Actions

Work Header

Skaifaya

Summary:

What if Charlotte was not the only or even the youngest child on the dropship? This is the story of nine-year-old Marie Matthews, who is sent down to earth as a member of the 100. When Murphy is exiled from the 100 Marie follows him and they run into grounders. Separated from the 100 and to become Anya's second how will Marie stay alive and find a new life for herself?

Notes:

This story had been originally posted under my first account before I deleted it.
I now put 10 chapters each into one document and first this will only be the chapters which arleady were published. But I am outlining further plot currently, so, I will continue.

Chapter 1: Chapter 1 - 10

Chapter Text

Chapter 1

“Prisoner 299, face to the wall and hands behind your back!” came the harshly barked order as the door was ripped open to the small cell. Marie hastily scurried to obey the order of one of the guards. With only nine years she was a small scrawny girl with long wavy blonde hair and steel grey eyes. It did not happen too often that guards came into her cell and she immediately wondered what might be going on. The guard was not carrying any food or supplies as far as she could see, glancing over her shoulder. She obediently put her hands on the wall she stood facing and waited in silence, the guards never reacted too well to unnecessary questions.

Her hands were pulled from the wall roughly and were cuffed together behind her back in an uncomfortable position and Marie bit her lips, trying to contain a light whimper. A moment later, she was roughly led out of her cell by the guard. As she was brought onto the hallway, she quickly looked around and to her consternation, she could see similar things happen to the other teenage prisoners all around her. The hall was filled with the other prisoners, handcuffed as well and led along the hall by guards, some were struggling, while others went without any protest. They were all led out of the sky box quickly and the guard pulled her along relentless, Marie doubted it would make any difference if she tried to put up a fight. Marie’s heart started to beat faster in fright as she wondered why they were all being led away. Had the council finally decided to float them all, regardless of their age? But that could not be true, no one under the age of eighteen had ever been floated before as far as she knew.

“What is happening?” she asked the guard in a pleading tone, peering over her shoulder at the man who had cuffed her with a frightened look in her grey eyes. The man looked uncertain for a moment and Marie thought to spot a hint of compassion in his dark eyes, but he answered in a low tone “I am actually not allowed to tell you, but you all will find out soon enough.” With that the man fell silent again and looked straight ahead.

“We will all be floated, won’t we?” Marie whispered horrified, eyes widening as panic flooded her mind.

The guard just shook his head but remained silent and Marie did not know if he had shaken his head to deny her assessment or to placate her.

If they were not floating them, what was happening then? When Marie caught sight of an air lock in front of them, she panicked completely and finally started to struggle against the man’s grip. She had seen her father been floated. She had been too young to remember much, but she would forever remember the air lock and the look of pure horror on her fathers’ face as his body was sucked out into space. She could see him standing in the air lock again, as memories assaulted her mind and blind panic rushed through her thoughts.

Nevertheless, the guard had no problem to physically overpower her and now more or less carried her through the air lock against her will. Marie wondered if he even truly registered her attempted fight.

Her heartbeat decreased slightly, when they left the air lock behind them, but she wondered just how far they would still have to go, as she did not even recognize the part of the Ark they were in any longer now. They entered a strange looking room with what appeared to be rows of seats in it and she was put onto one of the seats and strapped into the seat belts by the guard. Before the guard stepped away, he took her cuffed hands and undid the cuffs but kept her right wrist in a firm grip. Marie was fairly certain she would have bruises of the shape of his fingers there later, her heart was still hammering inside her chest, afraid of just what exactly was going on. The guard took out some weird kind of wristband that Marie had never seen before and before she knew it, he fastened it around her wrist smugly with a loud click.

Marie clenched her teeth against the sharp pain suddenly shooting through her wrist and up into her arm when the wristband was snapped shut. It felt as if long sharp needles had been rammed through her wrist all of a sudden and the pain pulsed strongly. The guard looked at her with an apologetic glint in his eyes and finally stepped back, not saying another word, he left the room. Marie looked around the strange room nervously, still not recognizing what the purpose of the room might be or even where they were. She had lost track of all the twists and turns they had taken to come here. Marie watched as more and more teenage prisoners were forced into their seats everywhere around her and geared with the same wristband. Some looked as horrified as she felt, while others glared angrily at the guards. One was even screaming insults around, but the guards did not seem to pay him any mind.

The last prisoner to be brought in was an unconscious blonde teenager, who Marie knew was the daughter of the medical chef of the Ark. She had spent enough time in the medical bay to encounter the older girl there, although they had not spoken more than a few words.

Her fear mounted when Marie realised that all of the guards had now filed out of the room, leaving all of the prisoners alone and her eyes scanned the room frantically.

The door to the strange room was sealed from the outside without giving them any kind of information and Marie could see that they now all felt the same kind of uncertainty. She spotted another girl directly across from her, who did not seem much older than herself, or at least also much younger than the majority of the prisoners and she guessed that her own features would show the same amount of horror. 

Suddenly and without any kind of warning the screens scattered all around the walls came to life and a videoed message played where the chancellor Jaha was addressing them. Marie watched the message intently and her eyes widened further with every additional word that left the chancellor’s lips.

Marie could absolutely not believe her ears and what she had just heard. The chancellor had said that all of them were being sent down to earth. From the little regular lessons, she had attended, Marie knew that earth was not supposed to be survivable for another hundred years at least, if not even longer. She frowned, when her mind focused on something the chancellor had said, they were sent to the earth simply because they were expendable to the Ark. Anger shortly flashed through her mind, but was replaced with encompassing fear. They were surely going to die soon. As the fear consumed her mind, she felt tears mist her eyes.

The teenage boy sitting directly next to her addressed her suddenly, pulling Marie out of her thoughts and she jerked her head around to look at him.

“What can a little kid like you have done to get into the sky box?” he sneered at her assessing the girl with a judging glance.

Marie blinked at him and her brows creased, speechless for a moment. She did not like the way he addressed her, but she doubted that picking up a fight now was sensible, so she gathered her voice back and answered honestly “I tried to steal medicine from the med bay for my mother.”

The boy’s sneer lessened noticeably at her answer and he spoke in a much softer voice now “My father was floated for steeling medicine for me when I was sick as a child. I am Jonathan Murphy by the way.” His thoughts seemed to linger in the past shortly, before he blinked and looked back at her.

Marie took a closer look at the boy, without the sneer on his face he definitely looked nicer. The girl startled strongly, yelping in fear, when the dropship suddenly disconnected from the Ark with a sudden strong jar and they were on their way to earth now.

“I am Marie Matthews” she answered a little bit shyly. She hoped that continuing to speak would keep her fear at bay, so she would go with it. Besides, she did not know anyone of the other criminals and it could not hurt to know someone if they were to survive the crash to earth, although she internally was convinced that they would not and even if they did, radiation would surely kill them in a few hours at least.

“Nice to meet you, Marie. But call me John. And how old are you?” John asked with genuine interest in his tone.

Marie was surprised that John did not seem affected at all by what was just happening and the boy seemed utterly relaxed. “Thanks. I just turned nine a few weeks ago” Marie told the teenager and continued to listen to Jaha’s message from the screen as she did not want to see the pity in John’s eyes. She had stopped listening for some time, but who knew if the man might say something useful.

The doctor’s daughter had obviously woken up, Marie could hear her fighting heatedly with the dark-skinned boy sitting next to her. Then suddenly one boy loosened his seat belts and floated through the small space without the artificial gravity of the Ark.

Marie had to smile at the sight forgetting her fear for a short moment, the floating looked like fun. Two other boys undid their seat belts and joined the first boy in his floating, all of them were laughing and Marie saw others reaching for their seatbelts. The doctor’s daughter loudly lectured them about the dangers but they totally ignored her, goofing around instead.

Suddenly, the ship gave another hard jolt and continued its course down to earth heavily jerking. Marie screamed when the first jolt happened and John sitting next to her took one of her hands and gave it a reassuring squeeze. Something had disconnected from one of the walls and crashed to the floor with a loud clattering sound.

Marie gave him a small thankful smile at the kind gesture, but she kept a firm hold on his hands while her other hand was clenched around the seat belt. She did not want to let go just yet, to her slight surprise John let her be without any protest.

The ship got an even harsher impact as it landed on the earth all of a sudden. Marie screamed again shrilly when the floating boys were shot onto the ground of the ship with the force of their impact. Her head smashed back into the seat and she looked on rather dazed. John pried her fingers of his hand a moment later and unfastened his own seat belt, others had already started to stand up. With shaking fingers, she also undid the straps of her seatbelt while the other teenagers were already scrambling to the exit. Marie stood up with weak legs and saw the doctor’s daughter lean over the two boys who had joined the first one to float, they were laying still on the floor. They did not seem to move at all and Marie wondered if they might be dead.

“Are they dead?” she asked uncertain with her voice pitched higher, stepping closer to them slowly and hesitantly.

The older blonde girl just nodded her head sadly, but she stood up suddenly when she noticed that others were already arguing about going outside. She was obviously trying to dissuade them from just opening the ship to the outside air. But what else were they supposed to do, Marie wondered silently. The chancellor had stressed that they needed to reach an old military base called Mount Weather to gather supplies. They had not been given any resources, so they would need to find water and food quickly, if they did not wish to starve.

Marie had always liked to read as soon as she was able to read that is. She had read that a healthy human could survive without food for around three weeks but only around three days without any water. They were all relatively thin as the rations in the sky box had been even smaller than the rations normal workers got. But water would be the most valuable thing for them in the weeks to come. If they survived the radiation that is left on earth that was. She internally hoped that they would not be too far from Mount Weather, as she doubted that anyone of them would know how to navigate around earth without help.

The blonde girl had obviously lost her argument with the boy on the hatch as he pressed a button next to the door and it blasted away. Marie was momentarily blinded by the bright light now suffusing the small space of the drop ship and she hesitantly stepped closer to the door.

The teenagers in front of the queue to the outside were already jumping outside looking around in wonder, some screaming in joy.

Marie remained at the back for a few moments trying to hold her breath, afraid to breathe in this polluted air. But the others seemed to be just fine outside, so she took some more shaky steps in the direction of the opened hatch.

Her mouth hung open in silent wonder at what she was seeing. She was frantically looking around trying to take in all the details at once. Everything seemed to be covered in green around them. But not just green everything looked so colourful and just alive. A bright contrast to the metallic and almost sterile atmosphere of the Ark they had grown up in. Marie had never before seen trees or grass and every surface seemed to be covered in some kind of plant, as far as she could look.

They had landed in what seemed to be a forest. It looked wild and untamed, untouched from civilization, or at least that was what Marie would have assumed it would look like. Marie wondered if the whole world now looked like that, after it had been wiped clean of the human race by the nukes. Marie wondered if there were any animals around. Looking behind her, she could see that the drop ship had destroyed some trees and set their trunks aflame. The others seemed to be unaware or simply did not care at all and were running wild around her like they were high on something, laughing and goofing around as if they did not have a single care in the world. In the other direction, she could see some big mountains on the horizon and started to hope this was not the Mount Weather Jaha had spoken of, it seemed to be pretty far away from them.

Marie’s heard dropped slightly, when she heard the doctor’s daughter trying to urge some of the others to start walking towards the mountain to reach it, before the sun would be gone for the night. The one who had opened the hatch wanted to send her off alone, clearly unwilling to follow the orders given to them by the chancellor. Marie wondered how one young woman should be able to carry the things needed for all of them, if she would even find Mount Weather on her own?

She offered to join the group who had gathered around the older blonde girl, but was rebuffed rather harshly as being too young and not much help anyway. Sulking, Marie left in the other direction into the woods. It was obvious that no one was paying her any mind any way. When she was barely able to hear the activity of the other 100 at the drop ship any longer, she slowed down and truly looked around.

Marie fell in love with the forest on first sight. Everything was so vibrant and so overwhelming. There was no constant humming anymore from the machines keeping the Ark going. The girl could hear a soft breeze jostling the leaves of the trees and what she thought might be sounds emitted from insects. She let her eyes roam over the trees around her in wonder. The forest was anything but silent, but it sounded so totally different from what she was used to.

Her eyes snapped back around, as she thought to have seen movement in the leaves of the trees in front of her. As she tried to focus better on the area, she thought she had seen the movement in, suddenly a bird busted from the tree on the left to her with a loud screech. Marie was startled by the sudden appearance of the bird and watched it as it flew off into the sky, awed at seeing a living animal. She dismissed the prior movements to that of another animal, registering in her mind that there obviously were still animals around. If they managed to catch animals, they would have a food resource already.

Marie jerked back around, when she heard the sounds of someone approaching her from the direction she came from. John suddenly stood behind her with a sloppy grin on his face “Might not be safe here outside on your own, Marie”.

“Because I am too young and too small?” Marie inquired moodily still sulking about having been rebuffed earlier. She had seen that she was by far the youngest of them, the other younger girl was around three years older. If no one of them felt responsible for her, she feared she would soon be forgotten entirely. So, it seemed she would have to fend for herself from now on if she wanted to survive. She guessed that the air was not toxic after all as she did not feel any kind of dizziness or something else.

John shrugged his shoulders and narrowed his eyes at her scrutinizing her once more “You seem tough enough to survive if needed. So, what are you searching for here?”

“Water” she replied immediately. She did not have to tell John, that she had forgotten about that in the meantime because of the distracting view.

John just nodded at her “Then let’s go. Together we have a higher chance anyway.”

Marie smiled at him slightly and started to move again further away from the drop ship. John followed her silently, although they did not speak, Marie did not feel oppressed by the silence. Her mind was still too focused on taking in all the new things around her and it felt companionable, walking together like that. 

“I have already seen a bird” Marie told John after a few moments, her grey eyes shown with the awe she felt and she felt rather proud for having seen an animal before him.

John looked around with wonder on his face after hearing that, obviously searching for another animal around them.

“Do you think it might be possible that some humans have survived as well?” Marie inquired thoughtfully after long moments.

John shrugged his shoulders “Don’t know, don’t think so, but recording to our earth lessons we should have died from the radiation already. So, who knows?” It did not seem as if the boy was too curious about finding out though, so Marie just inclined her head and kept silent.

Above them in the trees a lone warrior was silently following them from tree to tree, completely undetected by them and listening in on their conversation and observing the intruders to gather as much information as possible to report back to his general.

 

 

Chapter 2

Marie and John kept on searching for water for a long time. Marie grew bored after some time, slight frustration creeped into her mind with not finding anything yet. Although she was still awed by the forest, the novelty of it had already worn off and she felt her feet beginning to ache slightly. She was not used to walking long distances and suddenly the silence which had settled between them, did start to feel oppressive, but Marie did not know what to say to the boy.

“So, what did you like to do most?” John asked her out of the blue suddenly.

Marie startled slightly, but internally she was grateful that the boy had chosen to pick up a conversation again. Marie shrugged “Mostly reading” she answered honestly and after a moment she added “Mum would always try to exchange something for a new book for me every few weeks, after I had read the one before a few times.”

John laughed sceptically “I was never one for books. Never took a liking to it. My father always tried to encourage me, but he failed obviously.”

“What happened with your family?” Marie asked in open curiosity, remembering that John told her that their stories were similar.

“I already told you. My father stole medicine for me when I was sick as a child and was floated for it” he told her nonchalantly. Although Marie noticed that the boy did not seem to pleased with the subject of their conversation, her interest was sparked now.

“Do you remember him much?” Marie inquired further, before a slight frown settled on her own features as she tried to picture her own father. She was always sad that she forgot most of her father, she wasn’t able to remember the sound of his voice for instance. The only true clear memory of him she still had left, was his face contorted in horror before he was floated.

John shrugged again “Some details remain, while others are forgotten” he answered vaguely, when he noticed Marie’s expression, he added “I still remember him telling me to try to be better.”

“I still see him being floated in my dreams” Marie shuddered in a whisper, not being able to banish the image from her mind “But I wasn’t there when Mama was floated.”

Although Marie thought she saw some compassion on John’s face, the boy obviously did not know what to say and kept silent.

After a few more moments of silence, Marie continued to question him, trying to divert her own attention from her dark thoughts “What about your mother, John?”

John’s face showed an ugly sneer now “She was just a useless and pathetic drunk.”

Marie was startled slightly by his reaction and the sound of his voice made it quite clear, that the conversation was finished. Marie did not know, if she should try to apologize for asking or if it would be better to remain quiet. The latter won out after a few moments of contemplation and she again focused her attention on the wonderful nature around them.

Both of them noticed the sudden darkness around them almost at the same time. “We should head back, before all light is gone. We’ll never find the way back to the dropship then.” John announced, slight worry creeping into his tone and turned around abruptly. Marie followed him moodily, dragging her feet.

“We have not found any water” she complained deeply disappointed after a beat of silence. Her feet were truly aching now and she knew that they had some way to cover to get back to the others, she was already feeling slightly hungry and she felt tired.

“Obviously” was the one worded response as John urged her on faster, not feeling well in the darkening woods.

It took them quite some time to get near enough to the dropship to be able to hear the activity of the other 100 again.

When they finally made it back to the crashing site, the dark-skinned boy, who had fought with the doctor’s daughter was trying to tell the others to build shelter.

The other 100 seemed rather unimpressed by his words and most of them flat out ignored the boy. The one who had opened the hatch to the drop ship faced him then.

“We are not on the Ark anymore. Here the privileged will do the dirty work!” he announced loudly to the others and with an arrogant sneer on his face. His words made the others shout out in pleased agreement and Marie frowned, she immediately disliked the arrogant boy who looked to be older as all of them. She noticed, that he was wearing a guard uniform and she wondered why one adult had joined them at all and if one was chosen, why not a doctor or someone else useful.

Marie would have agreed to the dark-skinned boy, if someone had asked her, she could see the logic that they would soon be needing shelter and the longer they waited the weaker they would get without food and water. The drop ship was too small to house all of them and they had no idea yet about the weather conditions.

John on the other hand seemed to agree with the arrogant boy and jumped directly into the confrontation and he roughly shoved the dark-skinned boy out of the way.

“Your old Dad is not chancellor here” John’s voice had turned cold and mean. Now that Marie looked at the dark-skinned boy more closely, she faintly remembered him standing with Jaha somewhere at official gatherings. Even if his father was the chancellor, she really did not like the way John was treating this boy. They were all the same now, weren’t they? Send to the earth to die or rather to function as lab rats for the Ark.

John kept on antagonizing the other boy with taunts and sneers and suddenly they were facing each other with knives in their hands. Marie hold her breath in fright, she had not even been aware that the others carried any kind of weapons, as she had not been given one herself. She thought they were just fighting with words and not with weapons.

She had liked John so far, but she disliked this new side to her friend immediately. Now the softness in his face was replaced with hate and arrogance. His voice was cold and nasty. Marie hoped that he would not speak to her in such a fashion as well, it was hard to compare the kind boy in the woods and this nasty version here.

Marie was watching the boys circling each other with baited breath, the arrogant boy was just standing back with his arms crossed over his chest and silently waiting for them to finish their fight. It did not look like he was planning to interfere and no one else seemed inclined to do so as well, although all of them were watching the two boys circling each other with interest.

Suddenly the boy, who had opened his seat belts during the landing, fell from a tree and jumped in between them shoving John back hard in the shoulders and efficiently ending the fight before it had really begun. The boy was much bigger than John and seemed a bit older as well. John seemed to sense that he would not win against him and backed off after he threatened the life of the dark-skinned boy loudly.

John trailed behind the boy who had watched them fight and Marie did feel like joining them, so she ventured to the border of the crash site and silently sat against a tree looking up into the sky. She felt slightly disheartened by the obvious change in John’s behaviour, she had hoped that she could stick to him, but that had obviously been foolish of her.

She could feel her belly rumbling from hunger now. But hunger thankfully wasn’t a stranger to her. She had gone hungry many days before and she knew how to try to block out the nagging of her stomach. Marie knew from experience that she could block the nagging feeling out for some time, but it would not work forever either.

The others were still partying around in smaller groups and no one seemed to pay any attention to her, she was too young to be of any interest to them. When a boy and a girl laid down together only a few inches away from her, starting to make out immediately, she backed further into the treeline more than a bit put out by the couple as the boy started to remove the girl’s shirt and she saw her opening his trousers.

She was still near enough to the camp, close enough to hear the laughter and the ongoing party. Marie looked around the trees, wondering why no one was trying to do anything productive. Did the others think that food and water would just be falling from the sky to them? They had probably landed a few hours ago already and besides the small group which had left to search for Mount Weather, nothing had been done yet.

She had been lost in her thoughts for some time and was startled strongly when someone sat down next to her, making her jump in place slightly. Marie looked up and noticed that it was the dark-skinned boy John had fought with previously.

“I am Wells” he introduced himself with a kind smile on his face and offered a hand to her to shake.

“Marie” she responded with a slight frown, as she shook his hand shortly and turned her attention to him fully now. “I think you're right by the way, we should start to build shelters” she commented, her frown deepening.

Wells seemed to be perplexed for a moment, before he answered with a charming smile on his features “So, you’re a smart one obviously.”

Marie puffed out her chest proudly at the compliment for a moment.

“I am sorry John was mean to you” Marie continued in a compassionate tone, now assured that the other boy seemed to be nice enough.

Wells bestowed a sloppy side grin to her and shrugged his shoulders, waving off her apology “I had not really anticipated to be popular among the other criminals.”

Marie scoffed, she did not like the way he labelled them all as criminals. Sure, in one way or another all of them were criminals, but most of them were held in prison for petty crimes, only a few had really done anything more serious than stealing or taking drugs.

Wells tried to explain himself, when he noticed that he had offender her, but Marie blocked his rambling out and laid down on the moss under the tree, turning his back to the boy, as she hugged her arms closely around her body. It was turning dark anyway, so she should try to sleep. The moss was much softer than she had expected, it felt much softer than the metal cot in her cell had, but she did not like the feeling of dampness creeping into her clothes after a few minutes.

Marie heard Wells sigh under his breath, probably annoyed that she had ignored him now, but he said that he would keep her company for now and that she should not be alone. She did not actually give him a verbal response. but he stayed with her silently keeping watch over their surroundings. 

After a few hours of sleep, Marie suffered from the same nightmare that plagued her every night. She saw the blurry shape of her father standing in the airlock and being sucked out into space. She saw her mother getting sick again, getting thinner and weaker in front of her, while the medicine failed her. She saw herself being caught in the medical bay. She was thrown into her cell again and she felt the same fear again. The fear of the uncertain future, the fear for her mother, the fear of the silence and of being alone. She saw herself standing in front of the door of the cell crying, kicking and screaming to be let out again. But no one ever came, no one ever answered her pleas.

“Hey, wake up” a voice was penetrating her consciousness and a hand was gently shaking her shoulder.

Marie bolted upright at the unexpected contact and looked around herself with wide frightened eyes. Wells was still sitting next to her and had a soothing expression on his face.

“It’s ok. It was only a dream” the boy tried to soothe the obviously shaken girl in a kind tone.

Marie shook her head vigorously, as she fought off her tears. She knew it was not a dream, only her worst memories packed together into one nightmare and she wondered if they would ever leave her alone.

“Try to even your breath” the boy tried to get her attention again, noticing that Marie was not calm at all yet “Breath in … and out”

After a few moments, she managed to match her breathing to his words and gave him a smile full of gratitude once she felt calm again.

Before she could really utter a thanks, they heard a commotion coming from the camp. Both of them stood up abruptly and followed the loud noises.

The blonde girl had returned from her quest to Mount Weather with her companions. The girl, who was the first to set foot on earth, was wounded and leaned heavily onto another boy. But they did not seem to carry any supplies, so Marie gathered that they had not reached their destination and she also noticed that one boy was missing who had accompanied them. Marie frowned slightly, worry creeping up in her mind, the others had probably relied on the fact that the group would bring supplies, but they had obviously failed and they still had no water or any food.

Marie blinked, when she listened to what happened to the group on the way to Mount Weather. They seemed to have been attacked by either humans or mutant monkeys. Marie internally thought that humans would probably be more likely. The blonde girl, whose name was Clarke, wanted to directly go back in search of the missing boy. John and the other guy more or less volunteered to accompany her. Marie did not even suggest to go with them, if they were facing a possible threat no one would be willing to take on a kid.

So, Marie went through the crash site again and passed a fire where some of the teenagers had gathered into a line and were smashing their wristbands with stones to get them off. She just shook her head and shrugged of one guy who wanted her to join them. Judging from the pained grimaces on the faces of those who had gotten rid of their wristband, it was painful to have it smashed off. Marie retreated back to the border of the camp. She had heard the others speaking of a river and a lake they had encountered, so there must be water somewhere in the other direction. Silently debating in her head whether she should venture out in search of the river on her own or not, she fell asleep again, propped up against a tree trunk. She only woke up, when the group who had departed to hunt returned rather loudly. Marie watched how one of them carried the boy into the ship, he seemed unconscious and was probably wounded severely.

They had brought a dead animal, although Marie had no idea how they had managed to actually kill it and it did not take long until the meat was distributed to the ones willing to have their wristbands removed.

Marie actually had nothing against losing her wristband, it was still aching and no one on the Ark would care if she lived or died anyway. So, her hunger won out and she joined the others in the queue, although she was still afraid to only add to the pain still aching in her arm.

Having a stone smashed onto it turned out to truly hurt pretty much and she rubbed her tender wrist gently before she finally received her ration of the panther. Marie inspected the meat in her fingers with a slight frown, she had never before eaten any kind of real meat. There had been no farming animals on the Ark, so, beside the little organic food produced on Farm Station, all their food had been synthetic. The meat looked weird and the texture seemed weird as well, but her hunger gnawed at her insides and she gingerly took her first bite and felt like moaning out loud at the taste. It felt so much better than anything she had ever tasted before. The synthetic food on the Ark could absolutely not compare to this in any way. 

When it started to rain only some time later, they were also able to quell their thirst and Marie felt as if they were in heaven. She had envisioned rain to be somewhat different. It turned out to be just wet and pretty cold, but at least it was water.

But once she was soaked through, she started to shiver and got into the drop ship with the others to seek some shelter. The space was soon crowded, but at least they were protected from the rain and it was warmer than outside. Marie tried to find a comfortable spot to lie down, which was not that easy, the space was small and there were no kind of beds. So, she just sat down in a corner and leaned against one of the cold metal walls. 

Starting to drift off again, she tried to envision how their lives would continue now on earth. She tried to envision a peaceful future for them, although it was hard to make out how their daily life could look like. What a childish and impossible fantasy that was, as she later had to learn.

 

 

Chapter 3

On the next morning Bellamy made them all work together to erupt a wall around the crash site of the drop ship for security with the possible threat of other humans and wild animals in the woods. Marie could not really help with that, so she tried to make herself useful in other ways.

John seemed to have climbed in his grace during the trip the day prior and was not really doing work himself, but was instead shouting orders around for the others to follow. Marie watched him disbelievingly, the boy seemed to be enjoying himself and it was obvious how superior he felt. He had told her; his father’s mantra was to try to be better. She didn’t know for sure, what being better really entailed, but she was sure running around giving orders and bullying everyone would not fulfil the criteria. She frowned, she thought that they might get friends, but she did not wish to be friends with someone so mean.

As she was viewed as being too weak to physically do much by the others, she was told to help to ration some nuts a group of the others had gathered yesterday. The work was boring and monotone, so that she could still watch what the others were doing at the same time. She would have liked to do something more interesting, but she doubted that her complaining would do anything.

Bellamy seemed to have taken a liking to the other younger girl named Charlotte in the group of delinquents. She was still a few years older than Marie herself and had not shown any interest to socialize with her. Marie had tried to get closer to her in the morning, but the girl had outright ignored her, sticking to Bellamy as if she had become his shadow.

Not many had heeded Wells’ advice from the evening before to set up things to collect the rain water, so that they were falling short on water again only a few hours later. Marie had not found anything useful to collect water in, but she regretted not having looked harder now that she was beginning to feel thirsty again.

Marie was hesitant to ask for water, the mood in the camp was weird and she was slightly wary of John now, but she was positively surprised when John gave her some sips without questions asked and even gave her a friendly smile in greeting. So, Marie was completely baffled when another guy asked for water some time later and seemed to be denied instead. John shouted at him to continue working with a nasty sneer, shoving the boy away. But the other boy shoved right back and when John seemed to relent, he actually peed on the boy. Marie was absolutely horrified by such behaviour. What horrified her even more, were the laughing faces she saw around her as a reaction from the other 100. Not even one of the others seemed to contemplate to come to aid the boy and Marie felt disgusted at how proud John seemed to be of himself.

The boy did not get the chance to retaliate to John, as the doctors’ daughter and her group made their re-entrance to camp, with an unconscious boy. So, they had finally found the missing guy, who had been attacked the day prior.

As the girl shouted for someone to bring them clean water, Marie immediately jumped into action. She wasn’t of much help anyway, as all the nuts had been evenly distributed into small rations and stored away. She had just stood around for the last minutes without anything useful to do any way.

After bringing water into the drop ship, Marie lingered there, hoping that she could offer some more assistance. Clarke had thanked her shortly, but did not pay her any mind any longer.

The boy honestly looked horrible. He was pale and sweaty and had a huge hole in his chest. The doctors’ daughter tried to clean the wound as best as she could and made the boy drink some water. She had heard the others say that he had been speared in the chest and Marie could not even begin to imagine just how much this wound must be hurting him.

Marie watched her working on the wounded boy carefully, she had watched Clarke’s mother before when she her own mother had been treated by her. The guy’s best friend was also sitting there and pleading her to save his life.

“Clarke, please, safe Jasper” the boy kept on repeating desperately, dark eyes shining and holing one of Jasper’s hands. It was obvious that the two must be sharing a pretty deep friendship.

The blonde girl nodded, trying to placate Monty “I am doing all I can, Monty. Jasper is strong, he’ll survive. I don’t know what they put onto his wound, it has to have some antibiotic properties.”

The girl, who had been hurt yesterday also came into the drop ship and sat down next to Monty trying to calm him down as well.

All calm was forgotten a moment later, as Jasper woke up suddenly and started to scream at the top of his lungs. Marie startled and jumped slightly in place when his screaming began, he must be in horrible pain from the huge wound to cause such a sound. Goosebumps raised on her arms, she had never heard someone scream like that before.

“Don’t we have some pain killer?” she asked timidly. Marie did not like to watch someone suffer like that, it reminded her of the times her mother had been so sick, lying in bed and trying to reign in her moans of pain.

Clarke shook her head, frustration etched deep into her features “They did not really pack any medical equipment. So, there are no painkillers.” Regret was clear in her tone and she seemed to think frantically, probably trying to come up with something else to ease his pain.

A few moments later Jasper lost his consciousness again and the silence that followed was heavenly for their ears.

Marie left the drop ship again only moments later, wanting to flee outside and looked around the crash site. The fence the others were trying to erupt had made great progress. But Marie doubted it would be of any use if they were to be attacked. No one of them had any idea just what they were facing. But if those that could attack them, were able to throw a spear across a broad river and hit Jasper directly in the chest like that, she doubted that any fence would keep them out.

The next hours were difficult around the camp, Jasper woke up every few minutes and screamed non-stop. Some were already asking for him to be killed, they believed he could not survive anyway.

Marie could not listen to them complaining about Jasper’s suffering anymore and left the camp on her own, unnoticed in search of the river. They needed more water and the others had found it yesterday, so, she was positive she could find it also.

She wandered around the woods on her own peacefully. Marie did not want to believe that the inhabitants of the earth were really out to kill them and she had walked around the day before as well without encountering anyone. She was wondering why only Jasper had been attacked and not the others as well, but she had not shared her thoughts with anyone yet.

The woods were really beautiful and the air was so fresh, without the smell of disinfectants clinging to it like on the Ark. Her focus stayed on her new surroundings and it seemed as if every place she looked, held something new to see. 

After some time, Marie heard rustlings behind her and tried to hide behind some trees, fearing that it was either an animal or even another survivor. The sounds got louder with every second and Marie barely could duck out of the way of a blade that all of sudden came flying her way. Her eyes were trained on the blade now sticking in the tree trunk directly behind her and her breathing was erratic, her head had been in exact that spot only a moment ago.

“Damn! I could have killed you! No one was supposed to leave the camp on their own!” a guy she did not know reprimanded her sharply, stalking up to her and ripping the knife from the tree forcefully. Behind him, Bellamy and others of his group appeared, they were obliviously trying to hunt.

“Sorry” she answered weakly, still shaking a bit from the shock of nearly being killed.

“You okay?” Bellamy asked her kindly, stepping closer to her and offering a hand to steady her for a moment.

Marie nodded her head and stood up again, brushing of her clothes quickly as she stood.

Somewhere in the distance a horn was blown, the sound resonating loudly through the woods.

“What was that?” Marie asked confused, her brows creased. 

Everyone looked clueless, looking around and trying to make out the source of the sound, as suddenly yellow smoke came their way.

Bellamy immediately urged all of them to run and seek shelter. Bellamy grabbed her arm and tugged her along, when Marie had not started to move a moment later.

Fortunately, they had found a bunker around here before and could seek shelter there now. One boy did not reach the door in time and Marie could hear him screaming a long time before he finally quitted. She tried to fight against the urge of covering her ears against his screams the whole time.

“What was that?” Marie repeated her question with a horrified expression edged on her face.

“I would say it was acid fog” Bellamy suggested with a grime expression.

Marie swallowed, while her thoughts raced wildly in her mind. How did spears and acid fog go together? Were there different people out there?

But she did not voice her thoughts aloud. The others were arguing about Jasper. Bellamy seemed to be sure that Clarke would not be able to save his life and assured the others that he would put an end to his misery the next day himself, if he had not died already. Marie dearly hoped he would be wrong and that Jasper could recover completely.

The waiting until the fog cleared seemed endless. The mood in the bunker was glum and dark and Marie sat huddled into a dark corner trying to be invisible and blocking all of them out. She had slept a few hours on the hard and clammy floor only to be woken by Charlotte screaming from a nightmare. Bellamy spoke to her in a hushed tone, too low for Marie to catch even a single word and they all settled down again afterwards.

When the fog had finally cleared a few hours later, they were able to leave the bunker again. Most of them now wanted to directly return to the drop ship without any pray.

Bellamy and two others wanted to continue their hunt and Marie left all of them on her own. She knew the general direction of the crash site and would find it on her own.

On the way she suddenly heard someone moaning in pain and the sounds of ragged breathing. Following the sound Marie found the boy, who had not reached the bunker in time, lying on the ground of the forest. She let out a loud scream when she truly looked at him.

He looked to have been burned nearly completely. His eyes were unseeing and opalescent and he was obviously in grave pain, bloody blistered seemed to cover every inch of his skin.

Bellamy, Charlotte and two others had followed her screams and appeared only moments later. Charlotte looked as horrified as she felt when she saw the dying boy lying on the ground.

“Get back to camp” Bellamy demanded harshly, addressing both of them equally, his eyes not leaving the face of the boy on the ground.

Marie turned around and hurried away, while Charlotte lingered behind.

Marie had no intention of watching the boy die. She knew Bellamy would kill him, not even Clarke could do anything for him.

When she arrived back at the camp, night was falling around them. She could already hear Jasper screaming in the drop ship. So, he had survived so far, but Marie was unsure if that was truly a good thing.

She went into the drop ship. John was hammering loudly onto the hatch to the upper level, demanding to be let in, while Jasper continued to scream in pain from above.

John stopped his hammering, when he saw Marie appearing in the drop ship.

Before she could say something to John, Clarke appeared behind her completely breathless.

She climbed the ladder to the upper floor and demanded to be let up. She had found something to help him with the pain.

The girl who had been hurt let her in and a few minutes later the screaming from Jasper finally relented.

Marie listened on, praying that Jasper had survived and not died the moment Clarke tried to ease his pain.

She left the drop ship again and sat down in front of it. The drop ship was too crowded and she wanted to watch the stars in the sky. Marie fell asleep under the stars and managed a few hours of sleep before she was woken up by the sunlight on her face. She had never thought that she would ever be seeing the stars or the sun from under it. No one of them had ever thought to reach the earth and here they all were. Their generation had never been supposed to come down to earth after all.

The peaceful quietness did not remain for long. Wells had been killed in the night and his body had been found by a group who was supposed to head out to hunt. Wells had obviously been killed outside of the fence and it looked as if he had been killed by a grounder.

Marie felt truly sad to hear that he had died. The boy had been nice to her and had been one of the only ones to actually show her any kindness here. But he was gone now and she had already learned not to dwell on the people who were gone.

Clarke had been a close friend of his and she seemed to grieve him most. Some even seemed glad that he was dead. Maria thought it unfair to label him as chancellor just because his father was that.

A grave had been dug for Wells and he was buried together with the two boys, who had not survived the landing and the boy who had been killed by the acid fog.

Marie sat around the camp silently, feeling her mood plummet even more. They had only been here for a short time and already four of them were dead. How were they supposed to survive? Most of them were trying to craft weapons out of metal of the drop ship and others were trying to make the fence stronger. Everyone was working on improving their defences, clearly unified in their fear of the survivors.

But Marie highly doubted it would be enough. They still did not even really know what they were facing. She kept close to the edge of the camp, keeping out of side and simply watching the clouds move across the sky.

Sometime later Clarke stormed to John angrily shouting that he should be punished for killing Wells.

Marie did not want to believe what she had just heard. John had been cruel to the others, she would agree on that, but she hoped that he was incapable of actual murder.

Obviously, his dagger had been found where Wells had been killed and Marie could only watch on horrified as some of the delinquents started to gang up on Murphy together, overpowering the single boy easily.

“You are killing him” Marie tried to stop them desperately, running over to the group, but she was rebuffed directly.

Bellamy and Clarke were arguing with each other about what to do. Marie had thought with leaving the Ark they had left behind a world where you were directly killed for your crimes.

It was as if they were wild beasts, demanding each other’s blood loudly.

It ended quickly when Bellamy tried to hang John and Charlotte screamed that she was the guilty one, surprising every one.

Marie looked at her with her mouth hanging open as her mind could not wrap itself around the fact that Charlotte could have just killed Wells like that. She wondered just why the girl might have done that and she could not come up with a sensible reason at all.

The boy who had survived unfastening his seat belts in the drop ship finally cut John from the ropes in the very last moment, before John could truly choke and he landed on the ground with a heavy thud. Coughing hard to get air back into his lungs. His face was bloody and swollen where they had hit him repeatedly.

Clarke and the boy who had cut John free had taken Charlotte into a tent, in the moment of chaos and were arguing loudly now.

“Are you okay?” Marie asked as she hesitantly approached John. She knew her question was stupid, it sounded lame even to her own ears, but she nevertheless wanted to show support to John, when no one else had before.

But John just looked at her as if she had lost her mind and shoved her away and charged behind Clarke and Charlotte, loudly demanding justice.

Most of the others did not seem to agree that Charlotte should be sentenced to death, as they had only moment ago demanded for John. Marie did not know with who to agree, she was torn. It was unfair to execute John, but let Charlotte off simply because she was younger and a girl.

But some supported his claim and when they saw that Charlotte was gone, they went into the woods in search of her.

Marie remained behind at the camp absolutely horrified by the events of the day. Marie did not know what exactly to do now, she did not feel like sleeping, so she went back into the drop ship to check on the wounded Jasper.

He was conscious again and fortunately looked to be in a much better condition now. So, whatever Clarke had done, had obviously helped him greatly.

“You’re looking better” Marie just wanted to talk to someone in order to forget everything at least for a few moments.

“I will survive. Thanks kid” Jasper smiled at her with a goofy smile.

“My name is Marie” she supplied annoyed and grey eyes narrowed at the boy. She did not like being reminded that she was the youngest by far.

“Sorry Marie” Jasper relented with a slight smile.

“What happened outside? I heard a commotion” Jasper asked her, changing the topic.

Marie’s eyes filled with tears as she recalled what had happened.

Jasper’s expression mirrored her feelings. “We are spiralling down very fast” was Jasper’s last comment, before he fell asleep again, probably still worn out.

Marie could only nod in agreement and hoped silently that their situation would improve in the next days.

Hours later the others returned. Charlotte had killed herself by jumping off a cliff and the others had decided that John was to be exiled now. All of Marie’s protests fell on deaf ears when she tried to change their minds and John was literally shoved out of the camp in the dead of the night, without any supplies or any weapons.

Marie stood behind unsure of what to do. She thought his sentence unfair. Charlotte had killed herself, even Clarke had backed up that fact. So, she finally made her decision and followed John into the woods unnoticed by the other delinquents hoping to be fast enough to catch up to him. Later she would recognize this decision as the one, which had changed her life completely. 

 

 

Chapter 4

Marie stumbled through the darkness of the woods, feeling her heartrate increase as she frantically tried to search for signs where John might have vanished. But without any kind of light source available, she could only pray to be walking in the right direction. It was hard enough not to stumble and fall, as she could barely make out the foliage on the ground beneath her feet. No one of the others had tried to hold her back. Marie wasn’t even truly sure if anyone had seen her disappear at all. But she was fairly certain that no one would miss her back at the camp anyway, so she did not give leaving further thoughts.

Marie did not exactly have any exact plan on what to do now. She had hoped to catch up with John, but she could not make him out anywhere in her vicinity. So, her only real plan was trying to find John somehow. The problem was, that she had absolutely no idea where John might have gone.

Marie continued on with her search for a long time, but when she started to feel the coldness of the night seep into her clothes, she frantically started to call out for John, hoping in vain that the boy might still be close enough to hear her shouts. She tried to continue her way without changing directions too often, fearing she would start to go in circles otherwise. But honestly, she had no idea if that might not have happened already a few times. In the darkness, she could not make out any differences between the trees surrounding her and the sounds, which had sounded so peaceful and alive in the light of day, now made her jump in fright and let goose bumps raise on her arms.

“John!” Marie shouted for what felt like the thousands time, her voice had already gotten slightly hoarse and she felt tears of frustration pricking at her eyes. She stopped again to listen if he responded, but she was greeted with silence again and her shoulders slumped in defeat.

Marie pulled her jacket even closer around her thin frame, starting to regret leaving the camp in the night on her own. She chided herself a fool in her mind, she should have thought this through better, but there was no turning back now, she would never find her way back in the darkness. With every passing moment, her hopes of catching up with John were decreasing rapidly and Marie tried to control her breathing, aware that giving up and crying now, would not change a thing. Doubt about the direction she had initially left the camp in, was creeping into her mind and Marie bit her lip, convinced she would never find John now.

On the other hand, Marie had absolutely no idea how far away the crash site was right now. She had long since lost all sense of time and distance. Her feet were aching, she had stumbled quite a lot of times already, so that scratches littered her hands and face and with every passing moment, the coldness seemed to increase.

Her eyes filled with tears of frustration at realizing just how foolish she had been to leave camp in the night. Maybe she would have had higher chances of finding John, if she had just waited for first light. She could barely see few meters ahead as it was a nearly moonless night and the shadows seemed to play tricks with her mind, moving as if she was followed by frightening creatures, ready to pounce on her any moment.

Disappointed in herself for not being able to locate John, Marie huffed and finally let herself sink down against a tree trunk hopelessly, as the first tears ran down her cheeks. She did not even bother to wipe them away, there was no one to see them anyway. 

The night was turning colder and without moving around, Marie started to shiver strongly, only moments later. She had not even thought for a moment to bring a blanket or anything else, which she now realised had been a great error from her side.

The utter exhaustion of the day finally caught up with her and despite being cold, Marie started to dose of huddled against the tree, when she was jolted awake suddenly by a scream from somewhere in the woods around her. Her eyes scanned her surroundings frantically, trying to make out if John might have been the source. She pushed all thoughts about the survivors from her mind and she followed the noise, now also hearing a commotion. Someone was obviously struggling and Marie increased her tempo hoping it was John fighting of an animal, needing help. It did not even occur to her, that she would probably not to be able to offer any real help.

But Marie was utterly unprepared for the sight that met her eyes. She sucked in a sharp breath and eyes widened in bewilderment.

John was surrounded by two large humans or Marie assumed them to be humans. She could not make out their faces as they seemed to be covered with a sort of a mask. They did not seem to have noticed her arrival yet and the attention was solely focused on John. Marie spotted both of them carrying what appeared to be swords and she remained rooted on the spot. 

John stood absolutely no chance against his attackers and was overpowered immediately, as if he had not even tried to fight them. Marie took one step in their direction and a branch under her foot snapped rather loudly. One of the men had hoisted the now unconscious John over his shoulder, obviously intent on taking the boy with him. The other had whirled around in her direction at the sound of the snapping branch and immediately begun to run towards her now, sword raised in his hand.

Marie was frozen in shock, eyes widened in absolute horror. She knew that she would never be able to fight against someone as big as her opponent and trying to run in the darkness would not help much as well. She had stumbled around the darkness without trying to flee for her dear life before after all.

As he got nearer to her, her survival instincts suddenly kicked in and she tried in vain to run anyway, hearing her heart hammer in her ears loudly.

Unfortunately, Marie did not get away very far. She stumbled and fell down, hitting her head against a rock on the ground, before her attacker had even reached her. She was still lying dazed on the ground, when her attacker caught up with her and roughly grabbed her from the ground without a word. The guy carried her over his shoulder as if she weighed nothing. Marie tried to put up a struggle against his hold, but he only strengthened his hold over her thin body and she doubted that the man had even recognized her struggle.

As she hung over the shoulder of the guy, her only thought was, that she had obviously found John in the end and the inhabitants of the earth in addition. The man who was carrying her, wore weird kind of clothes. In the dim light, Marie could occasionally see small flashes of metal reflecting the moon light.

The unknown people started to converse in a hushed tone. Marie tried frantically to listen to them, but to her utter horror, she did not catch any words she could recognize. Maybe the survivors on the ground were speaking another language, Marie wondered silently.

Marie tried to see how John was doing, hoping that he had not been injured too severely when he had been knocked unconscious, but from her position it was impossible for her to get a clear view of him.

She had absolutely no idea, how far they were carried. But she did feel how fast they were moving. The grounders obviously had no problem to navigate through the darkness of the woods in comparison to her. It almost felt as if the trees were flying around them, blending together in the darkness.

It could have been several hours later or just an hour, when they finally reached some sort of village and pulled to a sudden stop. Marie could hear some people moving around, but it was mostly silent. It was still dark, so the night had obviously not passed completely yet. 

They were brought into some sort of cell and dumped onto the floor without any words. 

Murphy scrambled to his knees immediately, he had obviously regained consciousness some time ago and he tried to follow one of the men, who had brought them into the cell, before the cell’s door was closed in his face. He was just pushed back roughly from another man standing guard in front of the door landing on his but on the hard floor with a resonating thud.

He let out a grunt of pain and tried to open the cell’s door with force after getting up again, glaring angrily at the guard.

Marie stayed on the floor instead and looked around the cell. The cell was underground and she could see the dark sky through the cell’s bars. The floor seemed to have been tiled and was dirty, littered with dry leaves and dirt. The bars, on which John was still searching for a way out looked, old but they proved to be solid still. On the other side of the bars a guard was standing watch. Marie was unable to see the guard’s face, as he was wearing a terrifying looking mask and she was not entirely sure that there might not be more guards obscured by the shadows.

As the minutes ticked by and John was still trying to break the bars open and the guard did not seem the littlest bit fazed by his tries, Marie tried to discourage his attempts to escape. It was obviously wasted energy any way.

“John, I don’t think you’ll be able to break them open” Marie tried to get John’s attention in a hesitant tone and she stood up to get nearer to the other boy.

John whirled around and glared at her with a murderous expression. Startled by the hatred on his face, Marie took a sudden step back immediately and let herself slide down the wall and sat down again, pulling her arms tight around her midriff to get warm and pulling her knees up to her chest.

“Just shut the fuck up!!!” John shouted loudly at her, clearly angry. When Marie jerked at his raised voice John, calmed down again slightly.

“Sorry, Marie” John pulled his fingers through his hair in agitation, trying to calm down further. He knew that placing blame with Marie was unfair of him.

Marie just nodded silently, not looking up at the other boy. They were both scared to death, so she would not take his shouting personally for now.

John sat down across from her, finally abandoning the bars for now. “What were you doing alone in the woods anyway?” he inquired with a raised brow and what seemed like honest confusion.

Marie shrugged, unwilling to admit to having tried to locate him now, that he had been so harsh towards her. She had realized already, that following him on her own, had been a mistake.

After a few minutes of silence, which felt utterly oppressing to her, she finally admitted, that she had wanted to follow him, so that he would not be completely alone either.

“Oh damn. I had no idea” John said as an apology for his behaviour earlier. His expression seemed honest and Marie thought to spot genuine surprise flit through his dark eyes.

Marie just gave him a little smile and looked back to the guard, she was sure he would be listening in on to their conversation, if they were speaking the same language that is. But she could not see any reaction from him at all, he just stood there stock still, not moving an inch.

John had also seen the guard and was now again glaring daggers at him, as he pulled to his feet again. “Let us out! We haven’t done anything!” John demanded loudly in the direction of the guard, stepping closer to the bars again.

His shouting was only met by silence as the only reaction. Marie was starting to doubt, that the people here could speak English at all. It would at least explain, why the guard was not reacting in any form.

“I don’t know if they understand our language. I didn’t understand a thing when they spoke with each other” Marie voice her assumption to John, as her grey eyes stayed on the guard.

John just kept on glaring at the guard. There was nothing in the cell they could use to break the bars and he had felt how solid they were. Even without the guard on post, he would probably not be able to break free by physical force alone.

They fell silent again as they waited for something to happen and the minutes seemed to tick by ever so slowly. Marie started to shiver again in the cell. The night was still cold and none of them had more than a thin shirt and a light jacket and some long trousers. John took of his jacket and offered it to Marie to keep her warmer.

Marie gratefully took the offered jacket although she was surprised by the kind gesture yet again. It was big enough to be used as blanket for her and she stopped shivering soon after.

“Please tell me, if you’re cold and want the jacket back” Marie said, after she had thanked John with a grateful smile.

John just shook his head, waving her off “Keep it for now. You’re younger and will get sick sooner.”

Suddenly, there were footsteps loudly approaching from the other side of the bars. The guard turned around and nodded in greeting to the arrivals.

Marie was unable to see how many people had arrived no matter how much she squinted her eyes, as they were still standing in the shadows, obscured from their view. She could hear them conversing in hushed whispers in the unknown language before the door was opened with a loud creak which made the hairs on her arms stand up.

Five people entered together, in a closed front. It were two women and three men. The men were also wearing some kind of masks as the two men had already worn who had brought them here and were walking directly to John and yanking him up from the floor without saying anything. John tried to struggle against them, but he was dragged away as if he were nothing more than a little doll in their strong hands.

Marie looked at the scene with frightened eyes. It was obvious that they stood no chance at escape or to fight back. These people were obviously physically stronger and trained to fight, she could also spot various weapons strapped to their persons.

The women were eying here both with different expressions. The dark-skinned woman looked at her as if she was looking at dirt which had personally offended her. The blonde woman looked rather neutral and Marie thought to spot a glint of interest in her brown eyes, as if she was looking at an unsolved puzzle.

Marie just silently stared back at them, not sure what would be the best thing to do or to say.

The dark-skinned woman said something to the other after a beat of silence and Marie just now saw they were both armed with swords, she had only noticed the men carrying weapons before. The dark-skinned woman took her sword out of its sheath in one fluid motion and took a threatening step in Marie’s direction. Marie sucked in a sharp breath and tried to scoot away from her in reaction.

The other woman spoke some harsh barked words and after staring at each in silence for a moment, the dark-skinned woman reluctantly put her sword away again, turned on her heels and stormed out of the cell without saying anything further.

Marie was still focused on the spot the other woman had just stood in, when the blonde woman started to speak in a harsh tone.

Marie did not understand any of the words and just shook her head with a helpless expression.

The strangers’ expression turned from interested to suspicious in the blink of an eye.

“Where are you from, girl?” she demanded to know in a harsh voice that demanded answers immediately and her brown eyes were narrowed dangerously.

Marie looked at her with a slightly open mouth, surprised by the fact that the woman fluently spoke English. She thought to spot some hard kind of accent on some syllables, but it was perfectly understandable to her ears. The survivors must have developed their own language since the old world had been destroyed.

As the woman’s suspicion turned into a threatening glare at her continued silence, Marie hurried to respond “From the Ark”

“From the Ark?” the woman questioned back, her features hardening even more, clearly unfamiliar with the term “Mountain?!” she added with a snarl.

Marie shook her head with a frown, wondering if the woman meant a particular mountain. The Ark was surely not a mountain after all.

“The Ark is a space ship” Marie tried to explain desperately. It seemed as if the woman was losing patience with her and her lips were pressed into an angry line.

“Space?” the woman’s confusion seemed to grow and Marie noticed her hand tightening around the hilt of her sword.

“In the sky?” Marie tried to explain frantically. It wasn’t accurately correct, but the explanation would have to do.

The woman’s expression was a mix of disbelief and suspicion now, her brown eyes narrowed as she scrutinized the girl in front of her. “You mean to tell me, you fell from the sky?” she asked in a confused tone.

Marie just nodded her head helplessly, after all they kind of did fall from the sky in the drop ship.

“The strange star that fell from the sky?” came the next question, delivered with a raised brow.

“It wasn’t a star. It was the drop ship. We were sent down in the drop ship from the Ark” Marie tried to explain better, sensing that the woman seemed inclined to believe her words.

The woman’s eyes minutely turned to the still dark sky above them and then she returned her gaze to Marie’s face. “How many of you are there?” her voice had turned sharper again and there seemed to be dangerous glint in her eyes.

“Here? On earth?” Marie questioned back, stuttering slightly.

The woman just nodded sharply in agreement and waited for her to elaborate.

“100 of us were sent down” Marie answered truthfully. She had the feeling that lying would not help her now.  “But four are dead already” she added, slightly subdued.

In the distance, she could suddenly hear a pained scream and goose bumps formed on her arms. She had the pressing suspicion, that John was emitting those screams. Before she had the chance to plead for her friend the questions continued coming.

“Why were you sent down?” the woman asked, stance still threatening.

“We were sent down to see if earth was survivable” Marie answered easily.

The woman’s expression had now turned alarmed all of a sudden. “How many of you are left in the sky and will they follow you?”

Marie shrugged with an uncertain expression “I don’t know how many people are living on the ark but I guess more than 2,000 people”

The stranger’s expression had turned even more alarmed with this new information. “What do you want on earth?” the question was pressed through clenched teeth.

Marie just looked at her helplessly “To live. The Ark is dying.” She would not be able to answer specific questions about the Ark. She had no real idea about any of those things, she was just repeating things she had heard others say.

“What is your name and how many summers have you seen?” the stranger continued her questioning a moment later, changing the course of the questions slightly.

“I am Marie” the girl answered quickly, grey eyes looking up at the woman. “I haven’t seen any summer, there are no seasons on the Ark” she explained with a slight frown on her brows.

“How old are you then?” the woman rephrased her question, impatience seeping back into her tone.

“I have just turned nine years old” Marie answered truthfully, now able to understand what was asked of her. She doubted that anyone would have believed her if she lied about her age, she was not particular tall for her age, she had always been on the shorter side and the smaller rations in the sky box had surely not helped her growth.

“Still a goufa then” came the thoughtful response and it looked as if the woman’s brown eyes had softened, if only for a fraction. Marie gathered with a slight frown of concentration that “goufa” must be a term for a child.

In the distance, the screams were growing louder and more intense. Marie tightened her arms around her frame, feeling sick all of a sudden. She looked at the stranger with a pleading expression “Please don’t hurt him!”

The stranger seemed unimpressed of her pleading and just flatly ignored her, continuing to scrutinize her in silence.

Marie was aware that she could not do anything for John, but it just crossed her mind that her destiny was unclear as well “What will be happening to me?” she asked, trying to sound brave, but feeling horror settle in her mind.

The woman looked at her some more, before she answered in an even tone “We will see. But for now, you will live.”

 

 

Chapter 5

The woman turned her back on Marie after long tense silent moment and shouted what might have been an order in the strange language, as if she was addressing the shadows. Marie frowned behind her back, but she noticed that beside the long sword, a long dagger was strapped to the woman’s thigh, glinting in the dim light.

A girl came out of the shadows only a moment later, joining them in the cell and answered the woman in the same language. They exchanged a few words in their language, before the woman suddenly strode past the girl, closing the door to the cell behind her firmly and disappearing into the shadows.

Marie looked up at the girl still standing in front of her and she seemed to be only a few years older than her, but she instantly noted that there was a sword dangling from her hip. Marie frowned slightly, the girl was clearly a child still, but she carried a weapon, she doubted anyone would have given a gun to a child on the Ark.

The girl stared at her silently for long moments, brown eyes shining with honest curiousity. She tossed her wavy brown hair back and sat down cross-legged across from Marie in one fluid motion. Judging from her size, Marie would estimate her to be around 13 years old, give or take a year or two.

“I am Tris by the way” the girl broke the tense silence and introduced herself in English. Her English had a more prominent accent than the woman’s spoken words had, but Marie could still understand her fairly easily.

Marie met her gaze silently for a few moments, before she swallowed and finally introduced herself as well, even if she guessed that Tris must have been near enough the cell to listen on in her interrogation and so had already heard her name. It was still common curtsey to introduce oneself. 

Tris inclined her head in agreement and stated with an amused glint in her brown eyes “I knew your name already”.

Marie did not know, what to say to that statement, so she stayed silent, only huffing slightly in reaction.

“Are you really from the sky?” Tris asked curiously, breaking the silence and her interest seemed honest. She had leaned slightly towards Marie, obviously eager to hear about space.

Marie shrugged, narrowing her eyes at the other girl. She was surprised by the difference between the woman and Tris. After a moment of contemplation, she said “From the sky is not really correct. The Ark is in space, which would be behind the sky.”

The other girl looked impressed and she also looked up into the dark night sky for a few minutes in silence. Her brown eyes were visibly filled with wonder, probably imagining what it would be like among the stars.

“What is living in the sky like?” Tris asked excitedly, once her gaze had returned to Marie.

When Marie stayed silent, because she did not think she would have to respect a girl barely older than herself as she did with adults, Tris continued with a light smile “You don’t have to answer. This isn’t an official interrogation or anything, I am just interested.”

Marie observed her for a moment longer, before she accepted her words for the truth. “I don’t know what living on earth is like, so I can’t compare it with living in space. But the Ark is cold, sterile and everything is pretty crowded” Marie tried to explain her experiences of the Ark. She could not say that she had liked the Ark very much and since landing on earth, she had found it so much more beautiful.

“Can’t you see the stars from up close then?” the girl continued her onslaught, a slight frown on her face.

Marie just now noticed the silence around them, John had stopped his screaming. They had either stopped his torture or he had passed out. Marie hoped the first option to be the correct assumption. “Yeah, you can see the stars and the moon. But I always liked the view of the earth the most” she recalled honestly.

“And what does the earth look like from the sky?” the girl wanted to know next. If not getting satisfying answers was frustrating her, she did not show it in the slightest, only asking the next question.

“The earth is huge. A round planet surrounded by clouds, with a lot of blue and green” Marie answered. It was true, she had liked seeing the earth best, while she dreamt about what it would be like walking on the earth. “Do you know what will happen to me?” she quickly interjected, before Tris could bombard her with even more questions. The worry of what would happen was still gnawing at her mind and the woman’s answer had not been reassuring for her in the slightest.

Now it was Tris who shrugged as an answer, but her tone was still light when she said “I don’t know for sure. But you are still just a child, I don’t think you’ll be killed.”

Marie’s eyes widened in fright. She had not really thought that these people would be as cruel as to just kill them for being here.

Tris just continued as if she had not seen Marie’s reaction “Indra had wanted to kill you without speaking to you, but Anya refused to kill a child just like that. You are still alive so I guess, that she likes you somehow.”

“Now if that is not reassuring” Marie responded drily, trying to cover her fear with sarcasm.

Tris laughed out loud as if she did not have a single concern in the world in reaction, as if she had just told her the best joke. “Tell me more about your life in the sky or why you were sent down” she urged a moment later.

Marie just rolled her eyes, aware that Tris had listened to her conversation with Anya before from the shadows. “We were obviously deemed expendable by the Ark. They sent down 100 juvenile criminals to see if they can survive on the earth.” Marie finally said bitterly speaking those thoughts aloud for the first time.

Tris now did look impressed and even slightly confused. “You are all criminals?” she asked with slightly widened eyes, her head tilted to the side slightly as she added “What have you done then?”

“On the Ark crimes were all punished by death. Only kids under the age of eighteen are put into jail and either floated later or re-integrated into society.” Marie explained, bitterness seeping into her tone. In her opinion, she had not done anything which could have warranted her sentence.

Tris looked rather confused and her brows were creased, as if she had not understood everything she had just been told and was now trying to figure it out in her head.

“I have been put into jail for breaking into the medical bay and stealing medicine for my mother” Marie continued her story with a sad glint in her eyes. She blinked against the tears suddenly gathering in her eyes.

“You are killed for getting healing for a loved one?” Tris questioned, tone slightly raise and obviously shocked.

“Everything on the Ark is rationed. We only have so much for everyone and my mum did not get better with the medicine. So, I tried to help her.” Marie tried to explain, shivering slightly as a memory of her mother wasting away assaulted her mind. The laws on the Ark were absolutely relentless and a lot of the times unjust. “Most of the other 100 have been put into prison for little things. Like taking drugs or stealing. I think only a few have done bad things” Marie continued, just wanting to keep on talking before she could begin to cry.

Tris inclined her head in a mute response and stayed silent for a long moment, obviously thinking about what she wanted to ask next and processing what she had learned so far.

Before Tris could utter her next question, Marie beat her to it again “And what is live on earth like?” Marie hoped that she could diver the girl’s attention from herself.

Tris shrugged her shoulders with a slight frown, before she said “It is all I know. Life can be short and harsh here.”

“All is so colourful here” Marie added with shining eyes, still intrigued by the beauty of the nature surrounding them “And what are you doing?” she asked, as her eyes darted down to the sword on the other girl’s hip.

“I am Anya’s second” Tris explained with a puffed-out chest, it seemed to be something to be proud of. As Marie looked at her confused, unsure what the term meant, Tris added in explanation “I am training under her to become a warrior.”

“How old are you, Tris?” Marie asked with wide eyes, the thoughts running wild through her mind. The girl looked much too young to become a warrior already.

“I have seen my twelfth summer this year” Tris answered truthfully “But I started my training under Anya in my fifth summer.”

Marie stared at her disbelievingly. They started to train little children to become warriors she thought with horror.

Tris obviously interpreted Marie’s expression as disbelief and she pulled her shirt down slightly and twisted around, revealing five small round scars on her shoulder.

“This are kill marks” Tris explained with clear pride in her voice “I have earned them by killing others in battle.” She looked at Marie for long moments, before she readjusted her shirt again.

Marie could not believe the words she had just heard. This girl had already killed five other people and she seemed to be proud of it. As Marie did not want to offend her, she just nodded mutely. Life on earth must really be harsh if children were part of battles. After a few moments of strained silence she asked “Do all of you train to become warriors?”

Tris shook her head in the negative “No. Some become healers, hunters or traders. Or learn other professions.”

Marie was fascinated by this piece of new information. So, the people on the ground had some kind of community structure that must be working. None of them seemed starved, so they were doing relatively well. She had not seen any sign of electricity so maybe the people on earth did not use technology any more.

She looked at the sword fastened onto the others girls’ hip “You do not have guns?” she questioned with a frown. Swords did not seem very effective, if you could use a gun from a saver distance.

Tris looked horrified for a moment, brown eyes widening at the simple implication, before she shook her head resolutely “Guns are forbidden. It is said that if a warrior picks up a gun their village will burn down.”

Marie blinked at her owlishly. But she gathered that the population of the earth must all share their dislike for guns. With a sword you would not be able to fight an army with guns, so they must share their way of fighting.

John’s screaming started again in some distance and Marie pulled her arms tighter around her body. “Why are your people hurting John?” Marie asked with a worried expression.

“He must be unwilling to answer their questions” came the simple reply from Tris. She seemed completely untouched by his screaming as if this was not the first time, she was exposed to torture to get information.

“Will he be killed?” Marie continued in a whisper, unsure if she really wanted to know the answer to this question. It disturbed her that Tris seemed so utterly unaffected by John’s screaming, while she felt sick again.

Tris shrugged her shoulders “I don’t know. But it is a possibility. If he does not have any further use, probably.”

Marie turned paler after hearing Tris’ response. The female warrior who had spoken to her before had specifically pointed out that Marie was still a child and Marie had the sinking feeling that John would be seen as a child by them as well. What use could he have to these strangers? What use could she have? “Why I am still alive then?” Marie wondered with horror underlining her voice and widened grey eyes.

Tris grinned mischievously as she answered “Anya seemed to like you. But the commander will decide what is to happen with both of you.”

“The commander?” Marie pressed on, unfamiliar with the term.

“Oh, sorry, sure you can’t know that” Tris answered and explained “The commander leads the coalition of the twelve clans. The commander will arrive here at dawn.”

Marie looked up through the bars between the cell and the sky. It was still pitch-black outside, so dawn was probably still a few hours away. Marie swallowed forcefully, in a few hours a stranger would decide if she was killed or allowed to stay alive. If she was allowed to live, what would her life turn into? If she was killed, she prayed it would be a quick and painless death. All she could do now, was wait. This inability to do anything made everything worse tenfold and Marie felt like throwing up. Her stomach growled rather loudly all of a sudden. She had eaten the last thing in the morning and it had not been a big portion either. The third time in only a few days, her life had been turned upside-down. The morning seemed like a life time ago already and her happy times on the Ark seemed to be a completely different life now.

Tris had obviously picked up on her glum thoughts and tried to cheer her up by telling her some stories about her own life.

Marie listened on intently, grateful for the diversion the other girl offered. Tris had been born into a small village near the border to Azgeda. Marie had absolutely no idea what Azgeda was, but she gathered it was a clan these people had fought many battles with. Tris’ parents had been killed in an attack on the village when Tris was four. Only a few children survived the attack and the village had been burnt to the ground. Anya had been sent to look for survivors and had taken the young child in for training. From the stories Tris told her, the adoration Tris felt for Anya was as clear as day to Marie. Her life seemed simple without the luxury technology had to offer. But these people were obviously content with their lives.

Marie wondered if the population from the Ark would be able to adapt to living without electricity as well, once they came down to earth. Most of the people there were completely dependent of the technology. It was just a simple part of their life and in everything that surrounded them on the Ark.

But from the stories Tris told her, Marie also could definitely gather that life on earth truly was harsh. The people here were used to fight battles upon battles for their survival. Warriors often died young in battle. Their medicine or the healers were obviously not able to heal many wounds. Losing a limp in battle, meant that the warriors could not fight anymore. But the villages seemed to take care of their inhabitants and everyone was doing what they could to contribute.

Marie constantly compared Tris’ experiences to her own. Sure, the Ark had technology, but it was so constricted that everything was rationed and space was short. Here, people had more than one child in a family as many children died in their early years. On the Ark, if you could not life by the rations you were entitled, no one would help you.

All Marie could do now, was pray that their commander would decide to let her life. She really wished to get the possibility to see more of the earth and the lives of its inhabitants. She did not know, if she would be able to fit in with the way of the survivors, but in her opinion she could surely try.

 

 

 

 

 

Chapter 6

Dawn came quicker than Marie had thought possible. Tris’ mindless chatter had distracted her well over the last hours and she had not even truly noticed how fast the time had passed. As it grew brighter in the sky above them, Marie was starting to feel more agitated by the second and she was barely able to listen to Tris’ words any longer, starting to fiddle with John’s jacket nervously.

Tris picked up on the shift in her mood and smiled at her softly. “I don’t know when the Commander will arrive exactly” she explained with an apologetic expression. The survivors seemed to have lost the usage of exact time measurements and were travelling on horses, which probably made it impossible to predict a precise time of arrival.

As Marie’s stomach growled again loudly, Tris’ stomach joined in. Laughing lightly in reaction, the girl stood up from the floor in a slightly clumsy motion, legs obviously feeling numb from sitting cross-legged for so long and brushed her pants down quickly.

“I’ll see if I can get some food for us” Tris explained, stretching her arms high above her head and smirking slightly Marie, before she turned on her heels and left the cell again.

Marie noticed how a guard appeared closer to the door of the cell only a short moment later. She had not heard any other footsteps than Tris’, so the man had probably been there all along, just slightly further down, hidden in the shadows.

John’s screams had stopped hours ago and Marie wondered with a shiver, if he was still alive at all. She knew, that she was on her own here. Only her own life must matter to her from now on. She knew that none of the delinquents would be willing to search for her as she had left on her own. She still wondered, if anyone would even try to locate her at all.

Marie started to fidget around nervously, the silence seemed oppressive, being left with nothing else than her thoughts. The minutes seemed to tick by ever so slowly again, now that she was alone in the cell. What if the commander would not come at all? Would she be killed then? Her eyes flitted over the tiled walls of the cells and she began to count the tiles, if only to occupy her thoughts with a mindless task. She had reached around one hundred tiles, when Tris returned with a plate in one hand and balancing two mugs in the other. The guard opened the door for her and closed it again disappearing into the shadows behind the bars of the cell again.

She had a soft smile on her face and sat down gracefully across from Marie. Tris put the plate down on the floor between them and handed one of the mugs over to Marie.

Tentatively, Marie reached out and accepted it. She put it to her lips immediately and when she noticed that the mug only contained plain water, she started to gulp down the cold liquid with hurried sips.

Tris looked at her alarmed, brown eyes widened slightly and trying to slow her down “Slow down or it will come back up after” she warned.

Marie tried to slow down, feeling Tris’ brown eyes watching her every move, but only seconds later the mug was drained and she put it down to the floor with a sorrowful expression, regretting to have emptied it so fast.

Tris shoved her own mug over to Marie, with an amused smirk “Take it as well. I can get more for us later.”

Marie nodded at her thankfully and focused her attention on the plate in front of them. There was some meat on sticks, some bread, something Marie thought might be cheese and some fruit she did not know.

“Take whatever you want” Tris offered with a soft smile, having watched her expression as she inspected the food.

Marie took one of the sticks with meat cautiously and sniffed at it. It smelled divine. There had been no meat on the Ark and eating her first portion of the panther had been extremely tasty already.

Tris must have interpreted her hesitance differently and laughed “It is not poisoned if you fear that.”

As Marie shook her head in denial quickly, Tris added with an almost evil grin “Poison would go better into water anyway.”

Marie nearly choked on the piece of meat, she had bitten off a second ago, caught off guard by the other girl’s comment and the casual way she had proclaimed her words.

“Just a joke” Tris added laughing freely at the horrified expression flitting over Marie’s features.

Marie huffed under her breath and lightly glared at the older girl.

Suddenly the door to the ceiling was opened again harshly and Anya strode into the cell with a murderous glare on her face. She spoke some quick harsh words to Tris and the girls’ smile froze on her face and she looked abashed all of a sudden, shoulders sagged visibly.

Marie gathered that Tris must have given her food and water without gaining permission from Anya first. She tried to defend the actions from the other girl to Anya “Please, don’t be hard on Tris. She was nice to me.” She knew that speaking up had been a mistake, when Anya directed another murderous glare at her direction, before she turned back to Tris and continued to reprimand the older girl in their foreign language.

The girl sprung to her feet quickly, as soon as Anya had stopped her rant and hurried out of the cell without another word to either of them, not even once looking at Marie as she left.

After a moment of heavy silence, Anya also left the cell. With relief, Marie noted that Anya had left her with the mug of water and the plate full of food.

The guard returned to his post nearer to the bars and Marie ate some of the food in complete silence. Trying to keep her attention focused on chewing and swallowing only. Now she could really just wait for something to happen. Marie was cautious not to drink and eat everything Tris had given her at once, who knew when she would get another ration. Judging from Anya’s reaction to seeing Tris and her together, she doubted that she would be given anything else soon. With nothing to do but wait and lose herself in the fears of what would happen to her, Marie started once again to count the old tiles on the wall to keep herself distracted from her own thoughts.

Her focus wasn’t really good after a night with no sleep at all, so she had to start anew every few minutes, but the mindless task of counting the tiles served its purpose and Marie forgot to worry about her future all together. She was distracted from her counting when the door to the cell was pushed open again. Marie looked over to the door quickly and saw a young woman enter. Could this be the commander? Marie did not think so. The woman looked too young to hold such a position of power. She had brown hair, interwoven with different braids and wore armour not unlike what the others were wearing. As Marie looked straight back into the green eyes of the stranger, she had to admit to herself that this woman seemed to radiate a strange kind of power. So, she may be facing the commander after all right now.

Marie tried to sit up a bit straighter and taller, trying not to appear just as frightened as she internally felt.

“What are you doing on my land, skygirl?” the stranger inquired with a steely voice, green eyes narrowed and boring down strongly at Marie.

“I…” Marie started to stutter out her answer, as her tongue suddenly felt too thick in her mouth. This stranger made her nervous somehow. “We were sent from the Ark, to see if the earth is survivable.”

The commander inclined her head with an almost bored expression “I knew that already from the boy that was found with you. I wanted to know why you left the safety of your camp” the woman rephrased her question in a biting tone, scrutinizing the young girl in front of her.

Marie opened and closed her mouth soundlessly, for a moment unsure of what to answer. Finally, she gathered her thoughts and answered truthfully “John was banished from the camp. I did not want him to be alone.” Although she did not know this woman, she sensed that trying to lie to her, would be a deadly mistake on her side.

The woman looked down incredulously at Marie “So, you thought it was a good idea to follow him unarmed in the middle of the night?” she questioned with a raised brow, disbelief flashing over her features.

Marie just shrugged helplessly, lowering her eyes to the floor. Put that way, her plan had really been lacking a lot of thought, but she had come to that conclusion on her own already. Even if they had not been abducted by these warriors, how should they have survived in the wild on their own?

“Why do your people try to reach the Mountain?” the commander implored further, green eyes hard and tone steely.

Marie perked up, she could answer that question at least “We were told there might be a storage of food in Mount Weather. We did not get supplies from the Ark.” She at least hoped, that the woman was referring to Mount Weather with her question.

“Your people will not find the help they seek there” the commander countered, tone ringing resolutely.

Before the commander could formulate another question, Marie cut in bravely “What will happen to John and me?”

“You will not share the fate of the boy” the commander explained after a moment of heavy silence, where Marie tried not to squirm under the intense gaze of the woman.

Marie looked up at her with widened grey eyes and horror etched deeply into her features. Would they kill him?

“We do not harm the young needlessly. You will be allowed to stay and try to find a place within Trikru” the commander kept on explaining, not showing any kind of reaction to Marie’s unease.

“And what about John?” Marie asked tentatively, although she wasn’t sure if she wanted to know the honest answer. She was relieved to hear, that she would be allowed to live.

“The boy will be sent back to your camp” the commander spoke with a hint of finality in her voice. Marie would not be told anything further obviously, but she wondered why these people would be sending him back and allowing her to stay at the same time. It occurred to her, that the commander had not specified on the condition John would be in when he was sent back and she felt sour bile rise in her throat, already imagining that they would be sending John back in little pieces.

“Come” the commander ordered sharply, expression blank and she turned around on her heels striding out of the cell without looking back.

Marie struggled to get up, having sat on the cold stone floor for hours, her legs were now feeling weak and stiff. She tried to catch up to the commander quickly, as the woman did not seem inclined to wait for her. The sounds of the woman’s steps were already getting fainter and Marie was afraid of what would happen, if she got lost. She hurried along the corridor, spotting the woman at the end of it, as if she was waiting for her.

They climbed some old stairs to get outside together and now that there was light again, Marie could look around and take in the village with wonder in her eyes. The village or town was much larger than it had seemed in the dark. There were people everywhere going around their daily routine. She spotted warriors engaged in hand to hand combat, she was others preparing food and she even saw a woman nursing an infant against her chest. When they saw the commander coming their way, all of them would stop what they were doing and bowed deeply to the young woman with reverent expressions on their faces.

Marie followed the commander silently, her eyes hurrying from one place to another trying to take in all the new sensations at once. She was so absorbed in looking around, that she was utterly oblivious to the glares some of the inhabitants were sending her way. She also did not notice when the commander stopped walking suddenly in front of her and she abruptly bumped into the woman’s back. She stumbled backwards from the impact and would probably have fallen on her ass flatly, if not for the arm of the commander shooting out and steadying her. She glanced up at the woman sheepishly.

She startled, when a warrior in their close proximity took his sword from his sheath and approached her, sword raised in a threatening gesture. Marie looked at the approaching warrior with wide eyes filled with fear. She had not bumped into the commander on purpose after all. As the man approached further, the commander let go of her arm and made the man stop in his tracks with a simple gesture.

The commander let her gaze wander over the people around them shortly, most of them looked worried.

“The girl will be our guest indefinitely from now on. I expect all of you to welcome her into our midst” the commander let her sharp voice carry through the village unwaveringly. As some people still eyed the girl with undisguised distrust, the commander added loudly, steel creeping into her tone “An attack against her will not be tolerated.”

The people all bowed their heads again in silent acknowledgement and the commander turned back to Marie “You should better watch out where you are going” she warned the girl lowly.

Marie nodded mutely, while her cheeks turned a slight pink in embarrassment.

The commander continued their way without another word and Marie was cautious to keep a better track of her steps now, but she could not completely stop her gaze from wandering around the village. She was led towards a huge tent in the middle of the village which was flanked by several huge warriors. One of them opened the tent flaps for the commander and the woman stepped inside as Marie hesitantly followed her.

The interior of the tent was covered with furs from different animals and a huge wooden throne sat at one end of it, raised on a dais.

Anya was standing before the throne waiting together with the dark-skinned woman that had wanted to kill her the previous night. Marie remembered that Tris had mentioned her name to be Indra. Anya looked at the commander with an expectant calm expression, whereas the other woman looked slightly sour as she spotted Marie’s form behind the commander.

The commander strode through the tent wordlessly and sat down on the wooden throne “The girl will be allowed to stay” she proclaimed nonchalantly.

The dark-skinned woman let out a strange snarl filled with disbelief and discontentment, her hand gripping the hilt of her sword at her hip slightly stronger.

The commander’s eyes bored into the other woman’s, she asked, voice weirdly calm and expression blank “Do you got anything to say, Indra?”

The dark-skinned woman started to speak rapidly in the language Marie was unable to understand.

The commander lazily silenced her with a gesture “Speak in gonasleng, Indra!” she commanded sharply.

Indra shot a look full of hate towards Marie, before her gaze returned to her commander and she continued in English “Why allow one to survive? We should kill them all right now. They are invaders of our land, Heda.”

“We do not simply slaughter children, Indra” the commander offered in a bored tone, staring at the woman unfazed “I decided she will stay, so she will stay!” she added a little more sharply.

Marie was slightly confused, why the young woman obviously had so much power over others which were obviously much older than herself. She also did not have an incline as to why Indra was already hating her with such a burning passion, she had done anything to offend her after all.

“The girl will need a first, of course” the commander continued after Indra had fall silent again. Her green eyes shortly flitted over to Anya inquiringly. 

Anya minutely glanced over her shoulder at Marie, before she inclined her head and proclaimed in an even tone “I would gladly take her on.”

The commander regarded Anya for a short silent moment as their gazes connected and she dipped her head in silent agreement “You may have her. But keep a close eye on her, she is unfamiliar with our ways. Crimes out of ignorance won’t be tolerated for long.”

Anya nodded again “Yes, Heda. I will start right away.” Anya turned towards Marie after the commander gave her assent “Come, you have much to learn.”

Marie nodded worriedly. These people obviously led a completely different life and she could only hope to adapt quickly enough to her new surroundings. She followed Anya out of the tent and took the first steps into her new life.

 

 

Chapter 7

After they had left the commander’s tent, Anya guided her through the village silently. Marie just hoped that following the woman was the right thing to do. A few moments later, Anya came to a halt in front of a small wooden hut.  “You will get clothes suitable for your new status here” Anya explained and held the door open to Marie.

Marie entered the building and was met by the sight of an old woman. The woman’s skin was wrinkled from age and the exposure to the sun. In contrast to the reactions from the other inhabitants of the village, the woman smiled first at Marie and then directed her glance towards Anya.

“Landed yourself with another one, did you?” the woman asked Anya with a playful tone and her brown eyes twinkled visibly.

Anya just nodded stiffly, expression not turning even the slightest bit friendlier and gave the woman a look that clearly translated into “get on with it”, tapping her foot impatiently against the rough wooden floor.

“Come nearer, young one, and take off your clothes” the old woman demanded with a gentle voice, motioning her closer.

Marie blinked at her for a moment, her brows creased in confusion. Why would she need to strip in front of them?

“Can’t see what will fit you best under these loose clothes, girl” the woman explained as amusement creeped into her tone, when Marie hesitated a moment too long.

Anya seemed rather impatient as well and the glare Anya sent her way made Marie spring into action finally.

Marie shrugged out of the jumper and the pants she was wearing, but she kept her underwear and her boots on. Internally she hoped, that she would not be required to strip completely, not feeling well with the thought of being exposed in such a way.

“A scrawny one, I see” the woman commented in a teasing tone, when Marie was done with undressing and she inspected her body shortly.

Marie crossed her arms over her chest self-consciously. It was not her fault the rations on the Ark had been this small. When her mother was sick, they had tried to get extra medicine for all the rations they could spare. Later in the sky box, the prisoners were fed only the minimum to keep them alive. Mostly two small meals a day and if there was a shortage of something the prisoners were the first to go hungry. She had been in the isolation of the sky box for around a year and she knew that she had thinned even further.

The woman had turned around and was looking through a pile of different clothing articles she had pulled from a cupboard behind her.

Anya did not spare Marie’s reaction any attention and tapped her foot impatiently on the ground. The process was obviously taking too long for her liking.

A few moments later, she was handed different articles from the old woman with the instruction to put them on. Marie was a bit overwhelmed on how to dress in these strange clothes. All of the clothes seemed to have been recycled from other clothing. Different materials had been mixed together and sometimes a piece of metal had also been added into the mix. The clothes all had various straps and buckles and Marie was confused on how to fasten them properly. She fiddled around with the items helplessly, trying to figure out where they belonged on her own, but it did not seem as if she succeeded.

The old woman finally stepped closer to her and lend her a hand, noticing how helpless the girl was and fastened everything where it belonged. “That should do” the woman said only a short moment later. She was obviously satisfied with the result, as she stepped back with a small nod and a satisfied expression.

Anya shortly inspected Marie and nodded her consent to the clothes mutely. “Have some comfier ones and light armour for her sent to my tent as well” Anya ordered and without waiting for a reply from the old woman, she turned around and left the building, holding the door open behind herself for Marie, expecting the girl to follow her.

Marie was unsure if she should take her old clothes with her, but as she bent down to pick them up, she saw Anya turning around in the opened door.

“Leave them” Anya instructed sharply “You will not need them anymore and they can be repurposed.”

Marie nodded feeling strangely numb, leaving behind her only possessions from the Ark. But she knew, that Anya was right. She would be integrated into this culture and she would stand out even more among the people of the village in her old clothes from the Ark. But still it felt as if leaving the clothes behind would cement her leaving the delinquents completely. The numb feeling left her the instant she had followed Anya out of the house after waving goodbye to the woman. The village was bustling with people still.

“Wow, we were taught humanity had died on earth after the bombs fell. But it is so … so alive here” Marie voiced the wonder she was feeling aloud, looking up at Anya expectantly.

Anya gave her a short mild smile as a mute reaction, but kept them moving, weaving them through the tents and huts with the ease of familiarity. They went through the village towards the tent where the commander had stayed. In the near proximity other tents were located. All of the other tents were slightly smaller compared to the commander’s tent and Anya guided her towards what appeared to be the second biggest tent. “You will share a tent with me for now” Anya explained calmly, holding the tent flap open for Marie and motioning her inside, before she showed her the inside of the tent.

The tent was definitely smaller. It had two areas, one Marie thought might be reserved for sleeping and a second area where a chest was standing and a small table and two chairs were located, both parts were separated by what appeared to be a think leather curtain.

“Furs will be brought later for you to sleep on” Anya continued to speak in an even tone.

Marie just nodded in mute acknowledgement. She was still intrigued by this different kind of life and felt slightly overwhelmed with all the new impressions her mind had to process.

“We will get something light for breakfast and start your training immediately after it” Anya proclaimed after a short moment, enough time in her mind for the blonde girl to take in the tent, before she turned again and motioned the girl to follow her.

Marie followed her through the village again. On the other side of the village, Marie could see horses grazing. Marie was completely enthralled by the animals, Tris had already told her that her people used horses for transportation. She stopped following Anya when her attention stuck to the majestic looking animals and she wished to observe the animals for a moment longer. She had never before seen a living animal, except for the bird, as there had been none on the Ark. When Marie noticed that Anya had not waited for her, she sprinted up behind her trying to catch up. The woman had not appeared to be the most patient person and she doubted she would be pleased, if she just ignored. Unfortunately, she promptly bumped into a huge warrior, as she hurried behind Anya. She had simply not noticed the warrior crossing her path and had not been quick enough to slow her movements, to prevent crashing into the man.

The man whirled around to face her with a murderous expression on his harsh features and before Marie knew what was happening, she was backhanded harshly across her cheek from the stranger and lost her footing at the hard impact of the harsh blow. “Watch out, filthy invader!” the man sneered towering above her, eyes glinting hatefully and features contorted into a mean sneer.

Only a second later the man was lying on the ground, with Anya kneeling above him pressing a blade to his neck. “You will better watch out, Quint!” Anya hissed angrily at the man, pressing the blade a little stronger into the skin of his neck, piercing it lightly for emphasis “The girl is under my protection now. Heda decided she will be my second and spread word around camp.”

The man regarded Anya with a sour expression for a moment, but he nodded and stood up when Anya let him. He left without another word, but only after shooting Marie another hateful glare.

“Making friends already?” Anya teased her new charge lightly over her shoulder.

Marie cast her eyes down onto the ground, her cheeks dusting over with a blush. She knew it was her own fault for not following close enough to Anya, but fortunately the woman did not seem to be angry about that at all. The anger had faded out of her face all together after the man left them.

“Come” Anya ordered finally, tone stricter again and expression blank and they continued their way through the village together now undisturbed. They reached some buildings around a huge fire pit, where smoke was coming from chimneys.

Marie’s brain directly associated the smell with food and her stomach began to growl again. It had been a few hours ago already that Tris had brought her the food.

Anya was given two plates of food and two mugs without having to ask for them. It seemed as if everyone knew the woman very well, so Marie gathered that Anya must be pretty high-ranking within this village. Later Marie learned that Anya was one of the commander’s most trusted generals.

Anya sat down on some logs that had been placed next to the fire pit and mutely motioned for Marie to do the same. She was handed one of the plates and one of the mugs immediately after from Anya.

The mug did not seem to contain water this time as the liquid in it was of a slightly red colour and smelled strongly and weirdly. Marie took a cautious sip from the mug and had to cough at the strong taste, wrinkling her nose in disgust. “What is that?” Marie asked with a disdainful glare towards the mug, trying to supress herself from coughing and spitting out the foul liquid.

Anya snorted and amusement at the girl’s antics danced through her brown eyes. Her tone was even but hinted with the same amusement “It is watered down wine. From your expression I gather you never tasted wine so far?”

Marie just nodded in mute agreement and still looked at the mug distrustfully. She knew theoretically what wine was, but she was not sure if there had been any on the Ark. Even if there might have been wine, children under the age of twenty-one were prohibited from drinking any kind of alcohol by law. Marie knew that probably half of the 100 had been imprisoned, because of breaking this particular law.

“You will have to get used to the taste soon” Anya commented lightly and continued with her own food, although she kept close watch over the girl from the quarter of her eye. Water was not always safe to drink on the ground and wine was a common beverage.

The plate contained a strip of meat, a chunk of bread and some fruits again. Marry started with the red berries and let out a sound of delight at the taste. “What are those?” she asked after taking a second one and savouring the taste on her tongue. Her grey eyes clearly showed her joy as she glanced up at Anya.

“Raspberries” Anya answered simply with the corners of her mouth curling upwards in the ghost of a smile. It seemed weird that the girl was so intrigued by something so trivial, but it was refreshing to watch her reactions.

Marie decided that she liked raspberries definitely much better than the wine. The rest of the meal continued in silence and shortly after, Anya ushered her through the camp again towards the training pits. The training pits actually were just some free space, where wooden targets had been placed and borders were marked by some logs.

“I will need to test your skills first to start efficiently training you” Anya informed Marie, circling around the young girl.

Marie looked at the woman with a doubtful expression. “If you mean skills to do with fighting” Marie started lamely “I don’t have any. Children were not trained on the Ark.”

Anya looked slightly irritated by that statement, but just nodded in the end. Her lips thinned slightly “Then we will start with the basic skills.”

Basic skills for Anya obviously contained a perfect fighting stance for hand on hand combat to begin with.

For Marie it felt like endless hours, before Anya was even mildly satisfied with the way Marie placed her feet and got into a slight crouch raising her hands up to defend her head. She was sure that her shoulders and thighs would be sore in the morning from the uncomfortable position and having to take it up endless times again.

Anya also made her run around the fighting pits and the woman was really irritated to see that Marie’s stamina was next to none existent.

But how should she have gotten stamina to begin with? There were no offers of sports on the Ark and she had been in the sky box for the last months. Her cell had been so small, there was not much space to walk around in, so most of the days she had not made more than a few steps from one wall to the other. Marie was breathing heavily after only two rounds around the fighting pits and she felt the muscles in her legs burn and her feet ache. Some of the kids from the village who had eagerly wanted to watch the strange girl train where outright laughing at her now and begun to make fun of her. Marie had to struggle not to let tears of frustration flow and bit her lips hard to get her breathing under control, when she noticed them pointing and laughing at her.

Anya had her arms crossed over her chest and was showing a slight glare on her face. The woman shook her head in exasperation, her tone turned steely “You will just need to improve faster then.”

Marie nodded mutely, clenching her teeth together. She was feeling, as if she was confronted with an impossible task. But she would try hard to improve and satisfy Anya’s expectations, which she judged to be impossibly high. She prayed they would not cast her out on the spot for being weaker than Anya had thought.

After all, the training did end on a positive note as Anya handed her a dagger and told her to try to throw it at one of the wooden targets. Although lifting her arms felt weird and there was not much force behind her throw, she had not missed the target entirely. The blade fell down again only a brief second later, but her aim had obviously been well enough.

Anya nodded with a hint of satisfaction in her brown eyes “Good. When you improve your strength, the daggers will be your first discipline. Your aim was well, only the strength of your throw is lacking.”

Marie smiled proudly, she had a feeling that statements like this, would be all the praise she might get from Anya. The woman seemed nice enough, but definitely did not seem to be the cuddly type. Nonetheless, Marie was internally grateful when Anya told her that training would end for the day. Her limbs were feeling heavy and her back hurt from the unfamiliar fighting stance, she doubted she would be able to move again any time soon.

Anya brought her back to the tent, they would be sharing from now on, but told Marie she was allowed to roam through the village, if she did not go into the woods on her own. Dinner would not be for another few hours and Anya obviously had other things to do than babysat her the whole time.

So, Marie was left on her own in the unfamiliar surroundings. She stood in front of the tent undecided, unsure of what to do. She had no intention to go into the woods any way. She was sure that someone would haul her back sooner than she could try to leave any way. Anya had left her with the instruction not to get into trouble and Marie definitely was not planning to do that. She wanted to stay within her good grace as long as possible. Although her body felt tired, her mind was wide awake and she did not feel like sleeping now.

 

 

 

Chapter 8

Marie did not feel like sleeping at the moment and she wondered where Tris might be, but she had not seen all of the village so far and had no idea where to start to search for the other girl. It was also possible that Tris had other obligations and did not have time to spend with her. Without any other idea on what to do, Marie turned around and went into the direction she had seen the horses earlier. Wanting to see them again up close, now that she had the time. She could not forget the majestic creatures.

It took Marie some time to find the horses again, being so unfamiliar with the way through the rather huge village. But after some search, she finally found what she had been looking for. The people she met on her way, either ignored her completely, watched her with interest or turned away from her with distrust in their eyes. Word had obviously been spread, that she was not to be harmed, so the people left her alone for now and fortunately no one tried to approach her this time.

There were different horses grazing on a patch of meadow, that had been lined with a fence out of wood. Marie stood next to the fence and regarded the horses with eyes shining full of wonder. She had never seen any animals. There were no animals on the Ark. And these horses were absolutely huge and magnificent. She only knew, that the creatures were named horses as she had seen pictures from the old world in a book her father brought her once.

The horse that intrigued her the most was a beautiful black creature. It was amazingly huge and had a white star on its head. When Marie stepped nearer towards the fence the horse stopped its grazing and also came nearer towards the fence regarding her with dark wise eyes. The mare raised its enormous head over the fence and sniffed at Marie’s face, blowing its hot breath over her face. Marie laughed lightly as the horses’ breath tickled her face. Cautiously, Marie held her hand to the creature’s nose and let her fingertips graze over the soft skin of its nose. The mare whinnied a bit and nuzzled her hand in a way to tell her to pet her for a bit. Marie obliged the silent command and looked at the animal in wonder when it felt as if the horse settled the weight of its head into her hand. 

After a few minutes, the horse obviously had enough of her petting and went back to lazily grazing. Marie was slightly disappointed to have lost the animals attention so quickly. She made a few attempts to get the lost attention back, calling out to it softly and when her attempts all failed, Marie finally climbed through the fence onto the meadow the horses were grazing on, wanting to go closer to her.

The black horse looked up again, after she stepped onto the soft grass and came back to her. Nuzzling its big head into her midriff with a huff. Marie had only just begun to resume her previous caress, when shouting from a few meters behind her began. A man was running towards the fence all the while gesturing animatedly and loudly screaming a command in the unfamiliar tongue Marie yet had to learn. Marie just blinked back at the man owlishly, not understanding what he wanted her to do. The man also climbed through the fence hurriedly and came towards her with an expression screaming murder on his face for being ignored in such an impertinent fashion. To her utter wonder, before the man could make a grab for her, the horse she had been petting intervened. The creature blocked the man’s path and seemed to threateningly huff at the man and started to get on its hind legs kicking with the front legs as a warning.

The man seemed to be aware of the damage that the horse would be able to inflict on him if it wanted and went back through the fence quickly to avert the kicking front legs.

Marie looked on to the proceedings with a slightly open mouth. It seemed as if the horse had just protected her from the man. But why would a horse do that? She could not understand what had just happened.

Before Marie or the man could do anything else a strong female voice cut in, sending the man away.

Marie had to look around the horse to see that the commander herself had been the origin of the voice. Marie chewed on her lips nervously, the reaction of the man had clearly shown her that she had done something she should not have done.

She started to apologize, trying not to stutter, but the commander waved her off immediately with a lazy gesture.

“As it seems trouble seems to follow you, sky girl” the commander said with a hint of amusement in her voice and her green eyes seemed almost kind as she looked at her.

Marie pouted silently not knowing, what she was allowed to say and she did not want to get into even more trouble and Anya would surely already be disappointed when she heard of her newest adventure. The way the warrior had wanted to attack her before, simply for running into the commander, she did not wish to find out how insulting the commander would be punished.

The horse demanded her attention back and nuzzled her midriff again. Marie lightly scratched behind its ears, with a slight smile on her face.

“Curious. Touching my horses is forbidden for a reason, you know?” the commander continued, tone light, as she watched the young girl from the corner of her eyes “They normally do not let themselves be touched by anyone but me. They are trained against abductions.”

Marie looked at the young woman slightly shocked, thoughts whirling around wildly in her mind. The horse had been nothing, if not friendly to her. Frightened of the severity of her sin, she let her hands drop to her sides immediately as if burned and took a subtle step back. The horse obviously did not like her retreat at all and huffed again in complaint and kept on nuzzling her, prompting her to take up her caress again.

The commander had the hint of a small smile dancing around the corners of her mouth. She shortly let own fingers graze over her horse’s nose, before she assessed “She obviously likes you. You should not anger my horse by ignoring her now that you started.”

Marie could just blink at the commander in open astonishment. She had expected a lecture at the least or some form of punishment, but surely not to get the permission to continue. She stretched her hand towards the horse again, cautiously, watching the woman the whole time, trying to judge if the woman truly was not against her touching her horse. Marie guessed the commander’s personal horses were probably even more precious. “We did not have any kind of animals on the Ark” Marie finally said after a few moments of silence, as she glanced at the woman. She was wary of being alone with the leader of these people. She had no idea of their culture and she was bound to do one mistake after the other that way. The woman’s austere mannerism was alien to her and it made her even more nervous to be alone with her.

The commander inclined her head as if she had expected or already known this answer. Either John had been asked or they had concluded that fact themselves. “So, you will need to be taught how to ride a horse properly” the woman concluded in a kind tone.

Marie looked between her and the horse in wonder. Although Tris had already told her that they used horses for transportation, she had not thought that it would mean that she got to learn to ride, but she was already feeling excited at the prospect. She only knew of horse riding from an old fairy tale book her father had read to her a long time ago. In the book a prince had come riding a horse to a tower, where a princess had been hidden away.

“When will I learn to ride…?” Marie paused slightly at the end of her question. She was unsure how to address the woman correctly.

“You are eager to learn, I see.” The commander answered with a pleased note in her voice “You may call me by my name outside of meetings, but in front of other clans you will address me as Heda as anybody else does.”

Marie nodded immediately in agreement. The only problem was that she had no idea, what the woman’s name was anyway.

“What were the children of the Ark taught, Marie?” the commander sounded genuinely interested.

Marie tilted her head in thought, trying to remember as many of her lessons as possible. She had not attended many lessons only the basics, before her mother had been ill and she was incarcerated for trying to help her. “I have only been taught how to read and write, some basic math and the beginnings of earth study and history” Marie explained easily, features showing her utter concentration “I would have learned other things later as well, if I had not been caught stealing.” Marie bit her lips for a moment, unsure if admitting theft had been such a great idea on her part in front of the leader of the people here.

But the commander just nodded, maybe Anya had already told her that they had all been criminals of some kind. She could not see any kind of judgement in the woman’s features.

“What did you learn in earth studies?” the commander continued her questioning in a calm tone. She was truly interested to hear, how much the Sky youth might know about life on earth.

Marie first just shrugged a bit, she had not liked this subject in particular. She had not truly seen the purpose in learning something about living on a planet that their generation would never see. Looking back now, she wished that she had listened a little closer to her teachers. “Well” she started after a few minutes of silent contemplation, fortunately for her the commander seemed to be rather patient in contrast to Anya and just waited silently for her to continue, “We were told how to start a fire without a match, but just told in words. Burning a fire uses oxygen and the Ark was always short on that, so we just got the theory. Same goes for how to hunt or fish without a gun. In the last weeks I had been there, we were shown how to navigate and tell the time using the position of the sun. I know that later on in the class would have come more survival skills and how to grow crop and such things.”

The commander regarded Marie with a thoughtful expression, processing the information the child had offered freely for a moment. “Your lessons do not seem very effective without practise of any kind” she commented with a slight furrow to her brow.

Marie just let out a little laugh, totally agreeing with the woman. She had never seen the sense in knowing how to theoretically light a fire if she would never have to do it or know that she might be faced with having to do it in the future she did not think from the theory alone to be able to light an actual one. It had not sounded very complicated, but everything seemed easier in theory.

“But you did not learn any professions?” the commander called her out of her musings with another question.

“Professions?” Marie asked back unsure what the word meant exactly, tilting her head to the side slightly in confusion.

“Like healing or how to sew clothes or how to build a house or craft something” the commander tried to explain her question a little better, in term she hoped the girl would understand.

“Ah” Marie answered in understanding and shook her head in the negative “We would not be taught a job in school. In the year before you turn eighteen, you decide what you want to do later on or you got a recommendation based on the talents you showed in school. Some kids just chose to do the same their parents did. And when you turn eighteen on the Ark is the time you start training for your job.”

“That does also not sound very effective” the commander commented with a doubtful expression.

Marie shrugged helplessly “I did not make the system.”

“How does it work here?” Marie asked immediately interested in their way of living. She had judged already, from what little she had seen of the village so far, that the lives of the survivors were not comparable to her own experiences and life on the Ark.

“Children start training for a profession when they reach their fifth summer” the commander answered in a neutral tone.

Marie looked at her with wide grey eyes and her tone showed her shocked surprise “That is awfully young. You don’t have normal schools?”

The commander shook her head in the negative and explained “Not everywhere. In the capitol there is a school, but most of the smaller villages do not need one. The children learn all they need to know for their lives in the village they grow up in.”

Marie just caught up to the fact, that her peers on earth had the advantage of four years of training on her. How was she ever expected to get to their level of skills? She had already seen how lacking her skills were and how should she be able to make up for four years? “Do your warriors start training this early as well?” Marie asked hesitantly, internally praying for a negative answer.

“It depends” the commander answered “Some earlier, some later. I started my own training in my third summer.”

Marie looked at her with her mouth agape in horror. The horse seemed to sense her mood and whinnied at her to get her full attention back. Marie did not have the chance to say anything more as a messenger for the commander appeared behind the other side of the fence. The commander bid her goodbye giving her the permission to stay with the horses for as long as she wished and the explicit permission to visit them again later if she desired.

Marie was silently contemplating her future, while absentmindedly petting the horse from time to time, when Anya called for her from the other side of the fence. Her thoughts were glum and her shoulders were hunched. Marie quickly looked up at Anya and was relieved to note that the fierce woman did not seem angry at her, so Marie hoped that the commander had told her she had the permission to be with the horses.

“It is time for dinner now” Anya called her and impatiently motioned the girl to leave the horses “Come!”

Marie petted the dark horse one last time as goodbye and climbed back through the fence obediently.

“Have you been with Heda’s horses all the time?” Anya asked her on the way towards the place they had eaten before with amusement colouring her voice.

Marie nodded mutely. The prospect of having to compete with children that had years of advantage in training had dampened her spirit drastically. She was still unsure what would happen to her if she proved incapable for the training of a warrior after all and she was unsure on how to ask the woman, afraid that even through the simple action of asking she was admitting her incompetency and giving Anya further reason to be dissatisfied with her.

 

 

Chapter 9

Anya regarded her charge silently from time to time with a worried expression on the way to the communal fire pits. The girl seemed to be physically unharmed, but the wonder she had observed sparkling in her eyes earlier in the day had dimmed notably and Anya was internally wondering what had prompted the obvious change.

The girl silently accepted her plate and mug and picked at her meal in complete silence as well. Anya would have expected for the girl to be starved and parched after their training. She doubted that anyone would have given her water or something to eat in her absence. But the girl was not really paying any mind to the food in her hands.

Word had spread quickly through the village of the girl who fell from the stars and more people than usual were gathered around the bonfire trying to catch a glimpse of the stranger. Her performance on the training pit had not been impressing, but the girl being allowed to be with the commander’s horses already must have added to the others’ curiosity.

Marie seemed to be completely oblivious to all the eyes watching her every move. It was starting to turn dark and the only thing that seemed capable of catching the girl’s attention was the bonfire itself. Anya wondered whether the girl had even seen such a huge fire before, but she highly doubted it. From what the boy had disclosed in his interrogation the sky people relied on electricity completely. The boy had not wanted to answer their questions at first, trying to resist questioning, while Marie had spoken freely and honest right from the beginning. It had nearly been disappointing just how quickly the boy offered everything they wanted to know under even a little bit of physical violence.

Anya could see Tris wolfing down her own portion alarmingly fast on the other side of the fire to return to her guard duty as quickly as possible. Anya had assigned her extra guard duty as punishment for her disobedience with the sky girl. She had made it clear that Tris should have only stayed with her and try to gather more information, but Tris seemed to have taken the opportunity and try to befriend the girl instead. Handing out water and food to prisoners, was unacceptable and although Anya was sure that Tris had been more than aware of that fact, her second had deliberately ignored it. She internally wondered what about the young blonde girl had been enough to make Tris forget all caution like that.

The girl was just nibbling at her food pushing it around on the plate not really eating anything at all. Anya frowned, when she noticed the girl more or less playing with her food, obviously lost deep in thought. Long after she had finished with her own portion and with a flash of annoyance, she took the girl’s still mostly full plate away finally.

“If you don’t want to eat, you’ll go hungry for the night” Anya said to the startled girl in a harsh tone and strode away to bring the plates away. Someone else could get the rest of the girl’s portion so that it would not be wasted.

Marie was left alone at the bonfire staring forlornly at the dancing flames for long moments. She was so lost in her thoughts that she had not even looked up from the flames when Anya returned to her side.

“It's time to retire” Anya told her, impatience with the girl seeping into her tone and strode through the crowd with Marie silently following her, with her head bowed down towards the ground.

Anya had no idea what Lexa had told the girl to upset her, but whatever it was had turned the interested, eager to learn girl into this silent version and it was getting on her nerves. Nothing which Lexa had relayed to her, had made her assume that Marie would be so glum now. Anya hoped that a night of sleep would restore her mood again on its own, it was probably to assume that the girl was tired. She hoped, that the girl was just cranky from exhaustion but highly doubted it. She bit back a sigh, she was not good in offering comfort and was not looking forward to having to speak with the girl about what was troubling her.

No one followed them through the camp, but Anya had seen that Marie had not left any flattering impression on their people. Before she had collected the girl for dinner, she had heard guards whispering about the fearless girl from the sky who tamed Heda’s beasts. More than a few of them had already learned painfully not to get too near to Lexa’s mounts. Unfortunately, during dinner, Marie had worn the expression of a startled deer and not some fearless girl. Anya knew it was important, that the people of TonDC respected the girl on their own. For that the girl would need to make a name for herself rather sooner than later, or scenes like the one with Quint would keep on repeating themselves.

When they reached the tent, they would share for now, Anya could see that her orders were already fulfilled and some furs had been added for the girl to sleep on. The sleeping area immediately looked smaller with a second bed roll added to it and Anya huffed lightly, it had been some years ago that she last had to share her tent with Tris. Her other second had long outgrown the need to be kept company during the night. Theoretically, Marie was old enough to have a tent of her own as well, but as long as the girl was unfamiliar with their culture, it was safer to keep her under close watch.

Anya immediately started to discard her own armour in silence and motioned Marie over to her sleeping place. The girl was struggling to open the clasps of her own clothes and the frustration seemed to grow on her features. Anya watched her struggle for long moments, expecting for the girl to ask for help, but when she thought to see tears glitter in her grey eyes, she stepped in with a huff. She batted the girl’s hands away impatiently and helped her undress briskly.

Marie looked even more dejected as before when Anya stepped back. Silently Marie was fuming, angry at herself for not even being able to dress and undress on her own.

When they had both undressed and gotten ready for the night, it started to rain slightly and Marie could hear the raindrops splashing onto the tent. She laid down on the furs allotted to her and pulled one over herself as a cover. The furs were much softer than she had thought and she liked the feeling of them on her skin, she could also feel how warm they were keeping her after only a short moment. They did not smell disinfected like the blankets on the Ark, the smell of nature and wood was clinging to them rather intensely. Marie laid under the furs without finding any rest, as her thoughts kept on circling wildly in her mind. No matter how tired her body felt and she did feel utterly drained physically, her mind was still racing with thoughts. She was trying to lay still as to not disturb Anya next to her who she thought had already fallen asleep. The woman's breathing sounded deep and even and in the dim light filtering into the tent, Marie thought her eyes looked to be closed. Anya had also stopped moving a long time ago.

The rain kept coming faster now and the wind seemed to have picked up as well. There were other sounds, Marie could not identify as well and the new atmosphere was making her even more restless. The sounds of the wind suddenly sounded more like the screech of a wounded animal and it made goose bumps raise on her arms as she pulled the fur tighter around her frame.

She felt like crying at the moment and struggled to not let her tears fall. She felt overwhelmed by everything and helpless. And to top it off, completely alone right now as well. Marie wished herself to be back on the Ark, being younger and safe in the small quarters her family had inhabited in happier times.

After some time there were tears running down her cheeks unbidden and Marie started to sniffle softly.

Only a few moments later the first signs of a storm could be heard and thunder was growling above them, startling Marie. When lightning illuminated the sky followed closely by a loud growl of thunder, Marie let out a startled scream and she was shaking slightly under her furs in fear. She had never seen or heard a thunder storm before. She knew from her earth studies, that they were a part of the weather and that the lightning could ignite trees and kill people. She had fantasized as a child what witnessing one would feel like, but in her mind she had never been in a thin tent with basically a stranger.

Anya had awoken with a start, when Marie screamed and looked around with a dagger, she kept under pillow, in hand for the intruder she thought had made the girl scream.  When she could not detect anyone in the tent besides the girl curled up under the furs, Anya lowered the dagger with narrowed eyes. She did not appreciate being woken in the middle of the night without a reason at all. She wondered if the girl might have been woken by a nightmare and she grimaced in reaction.

At the next lightning accompanied by loud thunder the girl let out a little yelp again and Anya huffed irritated for being woken by her for something as insignificant as a thunderstorm. Those were pretty common for the region and this season. Anya slid the dagger back under her pillow and laid down again hoping to fall asleep again. But she could hear the girl clearly crying now, loud sobs leaving her mouth when there was no thunder. She had never been good with comforting, but she was the only one here and as she assessed the time she doubted the girl would stop crying on her own any time soon.

When the next thunder made the girl scream again muffled by the furs, Anya sat up again with a sigh. When lightning illuminated the tent for a moment she could see the girl under her furs, her eyes red and puffy from crying. So, she had obviously started to cry before the storm.

Marie did not look in her direction and seemed to try to be as silent as possible, so she had not woken her up on purpose either. Tiredly rubbing her eyes, Anya spoke towards the girl “What is wrong, Marie?” she tried to keep her tone kind, but she felt the tiredness clouding her mind still.

Marie turned her head and looked at her startled, not having noticed at all that Anya had woken up until now.

The girl hastily rubbed around her eyes with the sleeves of her shirt and just shook her head silently.

Anya huffed under her breath in annoyance. She was not the most patient person when rested and being woken in the middle of the night did not help her patience one bit.

The girl jumped again with fright under her furs, when the next lightning illuminated the tent brightly only a short moment later.

“Come here” Anya ordered briskly and lifted her own furs. Maybe some closeness to another body would calm the girl down or she at least hoped the girl could draw comfort from her presence. Tris had been rather afraid of thunderstorms as well a few years ago and would always silently make her way under Anya’s furs to snuggle up to her on those nights.

The girl blinked at her with a sheepish expression and seemed rather unsure if Anya’s offer was earnest or not.

When the next lightning occurred and Anya was still lifting her fur the girl leapt from her furs under Anya’s immediately.

The girl was shivering and looked totally spooked.

Anya cautiously pulled her closer towards her not feeling entirely in her element. The girl finally snuggled up to her and tried to control her shivering.

“You are safe here, Marie” Anya assured the girl in the softest voice she could muster “A little thunder won’t hurt us.”

Marie looked up at her with her big grey eyes wide open and nodded.

“And now tell me what has soured your mood before.” Anya commanded with a hint of stiffness underlining her tone. They were both awake now anyway and hopefully speaking about what was bothering her besides the weather would put the girl to sleep sooner later. Judging from the utter exhaustion etched into Marie's features, Anya highly doubted that the child had slept even a little moment before the storm had started.

“Nothing” Marie answered and tried to turn away from Anya, clearly unwilling to answer the question.

Anya curled her lips in irritation and narrowed her eyes at the child, she absolutely hated being lied to. She pinched the girl’s arm hard once and hissed “I do not appreciate being lied to.”

Marie looked rather startled about the pinch and was gently rubbing the undoubtedly smarting region with her hand.

When Anya kept her gaze firmly drilled into Marie’s eyes the girl gave up with a sigh.

“The commander spoke to me earlier” Marie began slowly, grey eyes downcast and fiddling a few strands of fur between her fingers in obviously rising agitation.

Anya nodded in acknowledgment “I know, Lexa had told me where to look for you.”

“The commander’s name is Lexa?” Marie answered back, her attention diverted from the woman’s question as she let the commander's name resonate through her mind.

Anya nodded again pursing her lips slightly, she tried hard to keep her patience, but she was not used to dealing with a child like Marie “Do not evade the question, Marie” she reprimanded the girl with narrowed eyes.

“The commander, eh … Lexa, she told me that you start training warriors from their third or fifth summer the latest” Marie continued in a clearly subdued tone, but did not offer anything else as if that would answer the question.

The way Marie looked at her now clearly showed that the statement somehow must contain the reason for her sullen mood before and Anya blinked at her utterly confused. “Yeah, so?” Anya asked after a moment of contemplation not understanding what the girl was trying to convey.

“I am nine already” Marie explained with an impatient expression, as if Anya had not understood her on purpose.

“So?” Anya asked again with a confused furrow to her brow. She knew the age of the girl, she had asked for it herself after all. Anya clearly did not understand the way the girl was working her thoughts right now. What had her age to do with the age the other warriors started their training?

Marie huffed and her lips were starting to tremble precariously as if she was on the verge of tears again.

“How the hell am I ever going to catch up with them?!” she let out rather loudly looking at Anya accusingly as if Marie’s lack of knowledge and skill was somehow Anya’s personal fault.

Anya still blinked at her confused. She was not expecting the girl to catch up in a few days or only after one training. The training earlier had clearly shown her that her new charge did not even possess any basic knowledge of fighting neither was her body equipped with the muscles needed for efficient fighting. But that would change as they continued her training, so Anya was still not able to understand the origin of Marie’s problem.

Anya let out a strained huff “Marie, no one expects you to catch up just like that. It will take month or years of training. Maybe you will even never be able to catch up completely.”

That had obviously not been what the girl wanted to hear and she did start to cry again, tears leaving glistening trails on her pale cheeks.

Anya was watching her rather helplessly, what was wrong with her now?

“What will happen to me if I fail as a warrior” Marie asked through her tears, voice shaking and desperate “Will I be killed then? Or allowed to stay? And learn to become something else? Or…?”

The girl kept blabbering on.

Anya huffed with a glint of amusement in her brown eyes. She now did understand her charge’s problem. The girl was afraid of not meeting up to their expectations for her and she was afraid of the consequences if she would fail. Anya silenced the girl with closing her mouth and gently wiped away the tears from her cheek “You worry for nothing, Marie. If you try your best at the training you will surely not fail to become a warrior. And if you do not enjoy the life of a warrior you can of course choose a different path in the future. You will surely not be killed by us. So, stop the fretting, Marie.”

“Really?” the girl asked with a sniffle looking pitifully small right now, but Anya still noted the hope gleaming in her grey eyes.

“As I do not like being lied to, I will always speak only the truth to you as well” Anya answered gravely, her brown eyes boring down intently at the child.

Marie giggled lightly with a relieved expression “You know, the commander gave me the permission to keep on visiting her horses.” Her voice clearly resonated with the astonishment and even a hint of pride.

Anya inclined her head in acknowledgment and an amused smirk tugged at the corners of her lips. As fast as the girl’s mood had soured, it was lifted as well again obviously. The girl was not comparable to Lexa or even Tris in the slightest, both of them had never tended to get overly emotional and the instances where she truly had been required to comfort them had been very rare.

“And she allowed me to call her by her name outside of meetings” Marie added with a proud glint in her grey eyes. The exhaustion seemed gone from her features and the child was wide awake and even slightly chirpy now.

Anya nodded again “So I have heard already. You must have left a rather good impression on Lexa to allow you this privilege.”

The girl seemed to glow with pride at the praise and what it must mean and the sparkle was back in her eyes, before lightning and thunder came back again after some silence and the girl shrieked again and pressed herself into Anya’s body more firmly.

Anya could not help herself and started to laugh before she caressed her charges back soothingly, until the girl began to calm noticeably.

“Try to sleep, little skaifaya.” Anya murmured to her as she also settled down again “I will keep you safe.”

 

 

Chapter 10

The next morning the storm had thankfully cleared away. Marie woke up still snuggled into Anya’s side comfortably. The woman seemed to be asleep still, her breathing even and deep and her eyes were closed. Maire peered up at the woman for long moments, as her grey eyes scanned over her features now that she had the chance to actually do so undisturbed. The woman’s features were sharp, even completely relaxed in her sleep, there seemed to be a lingering sharpness and austereness about Anya.

“Stop staring at me and get up” Anya grumbled at Marie suddenly with her eyes still closed.

Marie jumped slightly not having expected the woman to speak up as she had been convinced that Anya was still asleep.  “Sorry” she mumbled timidly, as a slight blush dusted over her cheeks at having been caught staring like that and she hurriedly inched away from the woman. She stretched slightly like a cat feeling the aches inside her body still. “Argh, my muscles ache” Marie complained in a whiny voice, testing slowly which movements hurt most and got up to dress for the day with a sigh, feeling Anya’s brown eyes watching her every move.

Anya had also gotten up now quickly in one fluid motion and she rolled her eyes at the girl’s complaint “You shall see, how your muscles feel after another round of training” she commented with a hint of amusement in her tone.

Marie looked at her utterly horrified, she had not even considered that her training would probably take place daily from now on. Internally she chided herself a fool for not having considered that yet, she was painfully aware of how lacking her skills were, so she would need to get as much training as quickly as possible, but she was not sure how she would be able to cope with the sudden physical strain on her body.

Anya laughed under her breath at her dumbfounded expression and tossed a wet cloth at her face “Wash yourself. I will grab us some breakfast shortly.” She had already dressed, while the girl had just stood around without doing anything really.

Marie glared at her retreating back, but started to wash herself obediently nevertheless. She should not anger the woman needlessly, she had gotten the impression that the woman would surely not accept disobedience or other non-sense. Anya would probably expect her to be on her own best behaviour constantly. She remembered Anya’s lasts words from last night, before she had drifted off again and noted to ask her about the unknown phrase later. The woman had spoken the words in an almost gentle tone and Marie was curious for their meaning. 

When Anya returned some time later, Marie was still struggling with her clothes and her hair started to look rather stringy and Marie kept pushing it out of her face in frustration, when the strands stubbornly fell in front of her eyes again, obscuring her view.

Anya placed the plates on the small table in the middle of the tent and huffed at Marie’s unsuccessful attempts to dress herself properly. “That won’t do” Anya said after a silent moment of observing the girl, so stepped closer to her and swatted the child’s hands away, closing all the buckles and straps in no time at all with practised hands. Marie would need to learn how to do that herself soon, but as long as the girl was unable to do so, she would help her. She turned the girl around and ran her fingers through her blonde locks shortly, detangling them, before she braided the wavy blonde hair into a simple braid fastening the braid in place with a short leather cord.

Anya turned the girl around and inspected her young charge with a critical gaze, before she inclined her head “Better, that will do for now. I will show you to the river later, where you can wash your hair”.

Although Marie was internally annoyed, that Anya had had to help her dress once again, smiled thankfully at the woman and tilted her head to the side slightly, trying to remember how exactly Anya had pronounced the unfamiliar words, before she asked curiously “What does skaifaya mean?”

Anya seemed perplexed for a moment, before a scowl settled on her features and she lightly glared at Marie and her cheeks seemed to turn a slight pink “Enough with the dawdling. Eat! Or you’ll go hungry until sundown.”

Marie wanted to argue, that she had not been dawdling at all and had only been curious and that Anya had evaded her question, but another glare from Anya, made her snap her mouth shut before she could try to argue with the woman. She sat down on the floor of the tent which had been covered with some pelts and eagerly ate the breakfast. Her stomach had started to growl at the sight of food. She had not eaten much the previous evening due to her glum mood, but now that it was lifted again, her hunger had returned.

Anya ate her food in silence and waited for the girl to finish rather impatiently, wanting to get back to the training pits as soon as possible. Once Marie did, Anya took the plate from her immediately and left the tent without any word, expecting the child to follow without being asked.

Marie blinked behind the retreating woman for a moment, wondering where Anya was going and why the woman had not told her, if she was supposed to follow or not. When she heard a throat being cleared directly in front of the tent, she stood up as quickly as her stiff muscles aloud, biting at her lips to reign in the slight hiss of pain wanting to escape. She hastened behind Anya quickly when the woman immediately resumed walking.

Anya discarded the plates at the bonfire, handing them over to one of the seconds on duty there and guided Marie through the village back towards the fighting pits.

With a small smile on her face Marie noticed that Tris already stood there, waiting for them. But a frown settled on her features, when they reached Tris and she could truly look at her. The girl reciprocated her smile in greeting, but Marie noted on the utter exhaustion painted on her face, bags were forming under her eyes, as if she had not gotten nearly enough sleep during the last nights.

Surprise flitted over Tris’ features, when she spotted Marie approaching behind Anya, but she did not make any comment.

Anya acknowledged Tris’ presence with a simple nod, her tone was sharp as she said “I hope the additional guard duty has cleared your head of your rebellious tendencies for now, Tris.”

Tris looked rather sheepish, lowering her eyes minutely before she nodded her head in agreement repeatedly “Of course, Anya. I’m sorry, I won’t disobey again.”

Marie listened to their conversation with a slightly confused frown, wonder why Tris was being punished. She dearly hoped that the other girl was not being punished because she had shown her kindness on the previous day. But she was pulled out of her musings by Anya, ordering the both of them to start running rounds around the training pits to warm up.

Tris jumped into action without missing a beat, being used to Anya’s drill and aware of what the woman expected, whereas Marie stayed in her place for a moment and sent a pitiful glance towards Anya in the vain hope of being let of training due to her aching muscles. Of course, Anya would have none of it and threatened Marie with additional training in the evening, if she did not obey her command immediately.

Marie ceased her unsuccessful attempt at manipulation quickly, when she noticed the impatience flashing through Anya’s brown eyes and started jogging around the pits as fast as she could. Tris was running way faster, so they ran around the pits in different rhythms. To Marie if felt, as if Tris was running at least two or maybe even three rounds, in the time she needed to finish even one round.

Anya kept watch over them carefully from the side-line, spurring Marie on sharply, when she started to slow down again after only a few rounds. Anya’s lips thinned visibly at Marie’s performance. The girl was moving too slow and her movements seemed uncoordinated and clumsy, even after only a handful of rounds the girl had visibly broken into a sweat and her breathing had gotten laboured. She wanted to see, how far the girl could push her own body, but Anya feared the child would collapse soon. So, she called both of her charges over to her, after another few rounds.

Marie came to a halt directly in front of Anya, breaths heaving and sweat running down her face. She tried to wipe away the sweat burning in her eyes, but only succeeded in rubbing more into her eyes. She had to hold herself up by putting her hands on her knees and leaning over slightly, as she frantically tried to regain her breathing.

Anya’s eyes narrowed at the younger girl, clearly unsatisfied with the girl’s performance. Her lips thinned, when it truly looked as if the girl could collapse any moment. She snorted under her breath, the girl would need to toughen up as soon as possible. She nodded to Tris, explaining to Marie briskly, that both of them would be using the hand to hand combat techniques, she had already taught her the basics off yesterday.

Marie foolishly assumed to have a higher chance at beating Tris compared to her previous experiences with Anya. She had forgotten for a moment, that Tris had also had years of experience in combat already. So, it truly was no surprise that she was lying gasping for air on her back on the ground only seconds later. She had not even gotten into the right fighting stance, before Tris had pounced her attack on the younger girl relentlessly.

“Again” Anya commanded in a bored voice from her post at the side of the field. She inclined her head at Tris minutely, acknowledging her clear victory. The girl had not fought unfairly, but she had hoped to see Marie try to defend herself at least a little.

Marie struggled to get up from the ground quickly, feeling her whole-body ache all over already. The rounds after that, Tris at least waited until Marie had gotten into her fighting stance, but it did not change the outcome of the fight one bit. The fights did only consist of one or two attacks from Tris and a poor try of Marie to defend herself against the other girl and Marie would end up on the ground again and again. After what felt like an eternity for Marie, Anya finally called an end to the fighting for now.

Tris looked at Marie apologetically, with a kind smile on her face and bend down slightly to offer her a hand to get up again. Before Anya could tell them what to do now, shouts were heard in the village. Marie looked over to them and saw that all of the inhabitants of the village were looking towards the sky, pointing at something. She looked up as well and a frown settled on her features, it looked as if another ship might have been sent down from the Ark and it was falling towards the earth with a flaming tail.

“Another part from your Ark?” Anya turned to her younger charge, brown eyes worried and lips pressed into a thin line as she questioned Marie immediately.

Marie shrugged “I don’t know for sure. But I guess. But the pod was rather small, probably only for one person.” She could not know for sure of course, but she did not have any knowledge of other people in space, which made it pretty probable that it had come from the Ark.

“It does not seem to have landed far from here” Tris observed thoughtfully, brown eyes hefted on the place, where the thing had disappeared from their sight.

Anya contemplated on what to do now for a few silent moments, before she inclined her head. “Come, we will try to find it” she briskly ordered, already beginning to stride into the direction of the tree line.

Marie felt a thrill of excitement run through her mind, forgetting about her aching body immediately, as she hurried behind Anya and Tris. The older girl seemed at least a little excited as well.

The way through the woods was much longer than Marie had anticipated and she had absolutely no idea how far away the village might be now or from which direction they had come from. What dimmed her excitement the most, was the fact that Anya had stopped criticising the way she walked from the very first moment in the woods. The woman constantly reprimanded her to walk more silently, although Marie was trying her hardest to copy Tris’ movements. 

“I am trying, Anya” Marie whined, annoyed with the woman’s constant criticism “Really…”

Tris had stopped in her tracks all of a sudden and Anya had whirled around, covering Marie’s mouth with her hand with an abrupt movement, startling the young girl strongly in the process.

Marie sucked in a harsh breath, looking up at the woman with widened eyes, wondering just what had made them stop. Anya and Tris both seemed to be searching for something, their attention solely focused on their surroundings.

“Ssh” Anya hissed at the girl under her breath, observing the trees closely and straining her hearing.

Only the fraction of a second passed, until a stag crashed through the bushes on their side, facing them for a second before it dashed away in another direction.

Anya let go of Marie and the girl looked after the stag shell shocked, grey eyes widened and sucking in another harsh breath. The stags head had been deformed split in a half between two faces, she had never seen such a thing before and the sight had shocked her speechless.

To Anya and Tris, the sight obviously was nothing to worry about and they both had relaxed again to some extent after the dear had vanished between the trees.

“Something or someone has startled the stag, careful now” Anya hissed at the both of them, as her eyes continued to scan their surroundings carefully. “You still place your feet wrongly” she continued her criticism in an annoyed tone after a few moments of moving again.

Marie sulked silently, as her mood soured again and tried to copy Tris’ movements harder this time. But no matter how hard she tried, she still failed miserably at it. If she looked on the ground to see the sticks she might step on, Anya demanded she did not heed her surroundings enough attention. She did not understand, how she should be able to know where she stepped without looking for it.

Sometime later, they finally reached their destination and could see that the pod had landed near a river.

Anya observed the pod from the safe distance of the tree line. Before Anya could leave the treeline to get a closer look at the pod someone could be heard behind them approaching the crash site as well. The sounds were much too loud to be caused by any of their people, so Anya instantly knew that it could only be Skykru or even worse Mountain Men. She whirled around quickly, motioning to her charges and Tris started to climb a tree next to them immediately.

Marie looked between the both of them worriedly, having concluded that whoever came there was probably not one of them. She watched how Tris climbed with a furrowed brow, absolutely convinced that she would not be able to get onto a tree like that and she dearly hoped that Anya had another hideout in hand for the both of them.

“Climb!” Anya hissed at Marie lowly, destroying the girl’s internal hope with her command.

Marie looked at her with wide grey eyes and fear flashing over her features, she had never climbed a tree and the first branch seemed to be awfully high up, she did not even know how she was supposed to reach it, nevertheless, climb the whole tree. She had already lost sight of Tris, as the girl had vanished at the top of the trees.

When the sound of the approaching person came nearer and Marie still had not moved an inch, Anya’s patience snapped and she quickly grabbed Marie and climbing onto the tree quickly, trying to hold Marie’s smaller body securely. Only a few seconds passed after Anya had stopped to climb further up in the tree, when a boy passed the tree under them with a raised gun in hand.

“It’s Bellamy” Marie whispered as lowly as possible to Anya, when he passed directly beneath them and she recognized his hair.

Anya nodded in mute acknowledgment and observed the sky boy. The boy ran to the pod, ripped the door open and searched for something frantically. He ripped a strange metal box out of the pod and closed the door again. Anya furrowed her brow in thought, the boy had completely disregarded the passenger she had already spotted inside the pod.

Bellamy ran a few meters away from the pod and threw the metal box into the river behind the pod. After the thing disappeared in the water the boy turned around and ran back into the woods.

All remained quiet for a few moments, but Anya still kept Marie mobilized beside her, waiting patiently if someone else might be approaching. She was fearing that the Mountain might have seen the thing falling from the sky as well and could come to investigate.

“What was that thing the boy threw into the river?” Anya demanded to know from Marie lowly, but her eyes remained on the metal contraption.

Marie shrugged in thought “I don’t know for sure, but it could have been a radio or something like that. Bellamy did not want the others to get in contact with the Ark.”

Anya kept a firm hold on Marie to make sure she would not fall accidentally from the branch they were cowering on, as the girl started to move a bit in this awkward position, clearly unused to stay still like this. The sounds of more approaching footsteps and a freely held conversation, made Anya tense again, tightening her hold on Marie even further.

When they were near enough to be seen from the tree, Marie easily identified the both of them as Clarke and Finn to Anya.

Anya observed the two teenagers as they ran towards the pod and opened the door also. But they in comparison to Bellamy were both more concerned about the passenger inside of the pod. A young woman with some dried blood on her forehead climbed out of the pod a moment later and hugged the boy rather enthusiastically. The other girl looked rather put out by the scene and remained in the background. They were too far away to listen on in their conversation, but a few moments later the woman from the pod went back and looked for something returning empty handed. All three of them appeared rather angry and hurried back through the woods in the direction the other two had come from.

Anya assumed that they were searching for the thing the other boy had previously tossed into the river. When the woods felt quiet again finally, Anya and Tris started to climb down from the tree again. Marie remained on the branch looking down to the ground with wide eyes. She had not felt too unwell on the tree with Anya securing her on it, but now without the woman, she was acutely aware of the heights.

“Come down, Marie!” Anya commanded loudly a moment later when the girl still had to move an inch.

Marie shook her head frantically, keeping a firm hold on the trunk of the tree. She had no idea how to climb down without falling the whole distance. She would probably survive the fall, but she would definitely hurt herself.

“Marie” Anya shouted again, impatience now noticeable in her voice.

When Marie still did not move, Anya turned away from the tree and sent Tris ahead back to TonDC with narrowed eyes.

The other girl left, sending Marie a short sympathetic glance over her shoulder. She knew that Marie would have to learn to move in the trees soon. They were surrounded by trees and using them as cover was essential for Trikru.

“Come back down at once” Anya ordered once more in a harsh voice that commanded absolute obedience.

Marie still just shook her head again, her fear only mounting with each passing moment.

Anya looked up at the branch she knew she left the girl on with an impatient glare “Believe me, you won’t like the consequences if I have to come back up and take you down myself!”

Anya’s threat had at least made Marie move a bit from the trunk, looking down to see if she would find a way to get down on her own.

“I don’t know how” Marie shouted down, voice frantic and tinted with rising panic, trying to keep her balance on the branch.

“It isn’t that hard, Marie” Anya answered back in a softer tone, rolling her eyes slightly at the frightened girl.

Marie huffed, of course it wasn’t hard for them. But she had never seen a tree until a few days ago nor had she ever climbed onto one. She had gotten one branch further towards the ground when she slippejChd and fell with a loud scream.

Anya had tried to catch the falling the girl before she could crash onto the ground, but the girl’s leg still twisted in an awkward angle with the impact of the fall.

“Ow!” Marie let out a pained moan as Anya let go of the girl to see if she could stand. The leg gave out under her and Anya caught her before she fell to the ground lifting the girl to carry her back to TonDC.

“Sshh” Anya shushed Marie in an almost gentle tone “Every child has to fall from a tree at least once, before they learn to climb. Nyko will take a look at your leg in the village.”

Marie gave her a little pained glare. She dearly hoped that not all of Anya’s lessons would contain hurting herself before she learned something.

 

Chapter 2: Chapter 11 - 20

Chapter Text

Chapter 11

As Anya carried Marie back through the woods towards TonDC Marie, was trying hard to silence her groans of pain. Her leg was throbbing in sync with her heart beat and with every step Anya took Marie’s leg was jostled slightly only increasing the pain. She was unused to this kind of pain, never having hurt a limb before now. She held onto Anya’s coat strongly, hands fisted into the material.

“We will be there shortly” Anya tried to sooth the girl in an almost soft tone, sensing her charge’s discomfort. A small part of her, was feeling sorry for the child and that she now was clearly suffering. She had not lied, when she told her that it was common for Trikru children to fall from a tree at least once, but she had not managed to catch the girl completely and she knew that their training would not be able to continue as planned for the next days if not weeks. Trikru children grew up in the trees, so they started climbing as soon as they could walk. It was rare for Trikru children to seriously hurt themselves during their first attempts at climbing as the heights they reached, was not high enough to inflict serious damage. She had always believed that letting her seconds learn their lessons the hard and painful way, was for the best. A lesson which had hurt hard enough, would caution the pupil to do the same mistake twice.  That the girl let herself be carried by her now and was even clinging to her coat as if it was her lifeline, puzzled Anya greatly. She was certain that Lexa and Tris would not have assented to being carried in such a situation, even as a child the commander had been too proud to show weakness like this. Marie on the other hand, did not seem to have the same thoughts. That the girl had drawn physical comfort from her on the very first night of sharing a tent was also weird. The child was apparently trusting, too trusting in Anya’s opinion, it had taken both Lexa and Tris weeks to show the same amount of trust.

Marie only inclined her head mutely in acknowledgement, although she had no idea on what Anya’s definition on “shortly” would be. For her the way back seemed impossible long and she did not recognize anything during their walk. She breathed a deep sigh of relieve, when Anya suddenly broke through the tree line, revealing TonDC directly in front of them.

Anya immediately carried the girl into the healer’s hut and laid her down on one of the cots. “I will fetch Nyko” she told her charge ordering her to stay put and wait in a strict tone.

Marie sat up again as soon as the door closed behind Anya and looked around the hut with interest. She had never been here before and the hut looked vastly different than the woman’s hut who had given her the clothes. She could see a lot of different herbs hanging from the ceiling in dried bundles and the shelves which lined the walls were filled to the brim with different sizes and shapes of pots. The hut could not be compared on any level to the medical bay in the Ark, so Marie wondered how the healer of the grounder might work. The air in the hut was smelling strongly with the different herbs and the sturdy looking wooden table which stood in the middle of the room was covered in dark strains, which looked suspiciously like dried blood.

A shudder ran through her body, when Marie wondered just how many people must have bled on this table to leave it looking like that.

Her gaze was still fixed on the table, when Anya returned with a man following behind her. The man was as bulky as the other male grounders Marie had seen so far. He had dark hair braided back and a thick dark beard. His face was adorned with two huge tattoos and his blue eyes looked kindly at her.

Marie shyly smiled at the stranger, still wary of the reaction of the others to her. The memory of the slap she had received just yesterday was still fresh in her mind.

Nyko reciprocated her smile with one of his own and crouched down next to the cot the girl was lying on. “Let’s take a look at your leg then” he said in a kind voice as he had already been informed of the fall by Anya on their way and helped Marie shimmy out of her trousers and felt along her bare leg with a gentle touch.

She let out a hiss of pain when Nyko felt along her ankle. When he proceeded to twist her ankle around in various directions, Marie bit her lips to keep silent, groaning under her breath.

Nyko thankfully finished his examination quickly and got up again to look through on of the shelves filled with a variety of different pods. Marie could not see what he was searching for, but she guessed that the various pods all contained something different. Internally she wondered how the healer was able to know all the contents and where to find something specific, she had not seen any kind of labels and she could not identify a particular order system either.

“The bone seems to be intact” Nyko told Anya over his shoulder, still searching through the shelf. “Probably just sprained” he mused in a calm tone. They always regarded it as fortunate if the bones remained intact, healing a broken bone took long and sometimes they did not heal correctly, leaving the limb crooked forever.

Anya inclined her head with a hint of relief in her brown eyes. A sprained ankle would heal much quicker than a broken bone would have. The girl had a lot to learn besides physical training anyway, so there was still much she could do with her without having her to strain her injury. The child did not have any clue about the simplest facts of their culture, starting with their language and it was her duty now to change this as soon as possible.

Nyko returned to the girl’s side with a pot in one hand and gently applied the green paste it contained on the swollen ankle. The paste had a strong scent of mint and it tingled on Marie’s skin. He wrapped the ankle in a clean stripe of a soft cloth being careful not to wrap the swollen limb too tightly. “If you want to walk later, I will wrap it with something harder” he told the girl, before got up again.

Marie watched the healer take some leaves from a bundle of herbs and throwing them into a mug with steaming water. The mug was handed over to her a short moment later with the instruction “Leave the tea for a bit and drink it before it cools. It will help with the pain.”

Marie accepted the mug thankfully and softly blew on the streaming surface of the tea in order to cool it down faster.

“She should favour the leg until the swelling is down or she might hurt the ankle further” Nyko told Anya, blue eyes holding a warning. He knew well enough from experience that the warriors tended to overexert themselves too soon after suffering an injury, prolonging the healing even further. It was obvious that the child was physically much weaker than any of their own children her age and Nyko thought she would probably need a long time to adapt. The girl appeared to be soft and she would need to toughen up soon.

“Will do” Anya answered briskly, rolling her eyes slightly. She did not understand a lot of healing but she was of course aware that an injured limb needed to be favoured until it stopped hurting mostly.

“Thank you, Nyko” Marie acknowledged the man’s help with a shy smile and in a slightly subdued tone.

Both Anya and Nyko were looking at her rather strangely, after she had thanked the man and Marie averted her gaze biting her lips nervously. The man left the hut without another word, there were other things he had to do and the general would be able to take care of her second from now on.

Anya still stood next to the cot and regarded her charge silently for now with a contemplative expression on her stern face. A slight furrow rested on her brow, noting that she quickly needed to instruct the girl on how to behave from now on, it was absolutely clear that the girl’s upbringing had been vastly different.

“Why were you both looking at me strangely after I thanked him?” Marie questioned Anya a moment later to break the silence, feeling nervousness rise under the woman’s constant stare.

Anya crouched down next to the girl, looking into her grey eyes deeply, trying to convey that small things like this would be of utmost importance “We do not utter thanks for everything. It is Nyko’s purpose to heal others.”

Marie took the first sip from the tea and nearly spit it out again. She had not expected the brew to taste this bitter and a grimace twisted her features, as she coughed, trying to get rid of the taste. “Seems rather impolite” she commented with a frown.

“It isn’t for us. You will get used to our ways” she commented with a stoic expression, the girl would learn their customs with time. Amusement danced through her eyes, as she took some pity in the girl’s struggle to drink the tea, to retrieve some tea for her “And I suppose I can find some honey for your tea to sweeten it a bit”.

Marie nodded immediately with a thankful expression, glaring lightly at the cup in her hand and watched the woman leave the hut with quick strides. While she waited for Anya to return, Marie’s thoughts circled around the differences between her previous life and what she would need to adapt to now. She had naively thought she would just need to learn to fight, only now realising that she had a lot more to learn than that. Marie had thought that maybe Anya was just a stoic character, but the commander carried herself in the same austere fashion and although Nyko had appeared kind, he had shown the same stoic expression.

A short time later, Anya returned with a small round pot and a small wooden spoon in hand. She immediately took the mug out of Marie’s hands and added a spoon of honey to it, before handing it back to the girl.

Cautiously, Marie took another small sip from the tea noticing the sweeter taste immediately with relief. Her grey eyes clearly showed her gratitude for the woman, as she smiled up at her.

“Drink up” Anya ordered the girl sternly “The brew is less effective if it cools completely.” She also wanted to get back to her own duties and had just wanted to make sure the girl actually drank the tea, before leaving her alone.

Marie nodded mutely and quickly downed the tea with some bigger sips. “All done” she told Anya and handed the now empty mug back to her with a slight smile. Anya just sat it down on an empty table, Nyko would take care of it later when the healer returned.

“You will stay here for the next hours” Anya told her young charge “You will probably sleep sometime. The tea will make you tired. I will come and collect you later.” She had had to drink the tea on a few occasions as well, Anya preferred not take anything which would numb her mind to the pain, but she knew that the girl would likely sleep for a few hours before the tea’s effects wore off.

Marie just nodded in acceptance with a slight frown and wiggled a bit to get comfortable on the cot. Although the healer had been kind enough, she hoped that she would be left alone until Anya would be returning later.

Anya covered her with an additional fur as a blanket to keep the child warm and left the hut afterwards. She still had Tris to train and report to the commander what they had witnessed at the pod.

Marie had no idea how long she had lain on the cot before she fell asleep. But it could not have been long before her eyes had started to drop shortly after Anya had left her. She had already been tired from the training session and the shock of the fall and now the tea made her fall asleep almost instantly. The girl woke up to Anya shaking her shoulders rather roughly. Marie blinked her eyes open quickly, her mind still sluggish and confused.

Anya had an angry snarl on her face and the woman had not come on her own. Behind her Marie could see the dark-skinned woman, who had wanted to kill her before, and to Marie’s confusion the commander was there also.

All of them looked rather angry, while Indra looked outright livid. Anya’s brown eyes were narrowed to angry slits and one of the commander’s hands was tightened around her sword.

Marie noticed that it was already dark outside, so she concluded that she had slept for some hours already. She had no idea, what was up or what she might have done. Her tired mind was racing to come up with explanations as to why the three women were glaring at her that way. She could not have done anything while being asleep, right?

She looked at Anya with wide eyes, feeling afraid under their intensive glares. Her breathing quickened slightly, when the moment of silence seemed to stretch into eternity.

“Your people have declared war on us” Anya opened the conversation in a clipped angry tone, brown eyes glittering like polished stone.

Marie opened and closed her mouth a few times without uttering a word, silent in shock. She was absolutely clueless as to what had happened and had no idea what to say to them to improve her situation now.

“Did you know they had weapons to burn down a village?” Anya demanded to know harshly, pulling Marie out of her thoughts again.

The girl shook her head rapidly with an alarmed expression. “They burned down a village?” she asked with horror seeping into her voice, looking frantically between Anya and the commander, trying to avoid looking at Indra altogether.

It was the commander who answered her question in a grave voice “Yes. A village a few miles away has been burnt to the ground by missiles. And an armed group of your people has been seen wandering my lands.” The commander’s tone was laced with steel and her green eyes were furious. “What weapons did you have?” she wanted to know from the girl, although she already sensed that the child did not have the information they were searching for.

Marie took a moment to answer, her thoughts still fuzzy from sleep “Bellamy had a gun. And some others build some spears or knifes out of metal from the ship. But I don’t know about anything else.” Her grey eyes were honest and she hoped that the women would believe her.

The commander inclined her head in acknowledgment, contemplating the girl’s words for a moment, before she motioned to Indra. She left with her in tow without another word, starting to shout commands outside of the hut. She had foolishly assumed that the Sky children would not attack her people, but they needed to be taken off as quick as possible.

Anya’s expression still showed her fury, even after the commander and Indra had left. Her hands were clenched slightly and her lips were pressed into a thin line.

“Were there many people in the village?” Marie asked in a meek tone, not sure if the woman was angry at her. Even though she knew what happened was not her fault, she hoped that the other 100 had not burned the village on purpose.

“Around fifty I think” Anya finally answered the girl’s question with a sigh. The girl’s grey eyes were still clouded by fear and she appeared awfully small on the cot. Her anger was misdirected towards her charge, she knew that. Anya had already told Lexa and Indra that she thought it unlikely that the girl would know anything. So, she took a few calming breaths, trying to reign in her temper, it was not her intention to frighten the child.

“Are they all dead?” Marie asked, voice barely above a whisper and grey eyes shining with a sheen of tears.

Anya had to strain her hearing to even understand the girl at all. She nodded with a grave expression “I fear so. Nyko and some others were sent to look for survivors.”

“I am so sorry” the girl whispered tears dangerously close to falling now.

Anya shook her head “It was not your fault, Marie. We do know that.” She tried to reassure the girl, although she was slightly confused why the girl would assume such a thing at all. She took the fur covering the girl away and hooked her own arms under the girl’s knees taking her up into her arms.

“Nyko will not return before tomorrow. So, you can stay in my tent now” Anya explained in a calm tone, while she carried the girl through the village. Marie hid her face in Anya’s shoulder on the way, unwilling to see the glares she was sure the inhabitants of the village would be sending her way now.

Fortunately, Anya did not comment on her behaviour and no one tried to stop Anya on her way to her tent. She sat the girl down on the furs she had slept on last night. Marie was still feeling rather sleepy so Anya left her on her own.

Also, the girl was feeling sleepy, she did not want to sleep at the moment. She could hear Anya moving through the tent and sometime later another person entered. They were conserving in trigedasleng, so Marie was not able to understand anything at all. But she did recognize the voice as being the commander’s.

They both sounded angry judging from their tone. Marie could not fault them for being angry, the other 100 had eliminated a whole village. Surely, they would be killed now and there was nothing she could do. The way she was feeling at the moment she even was not sure if she should want to do something to help them.

Sure, the grounders seemed harsher than the people from the Ark. But they had sort of saved her and with Anya she was now given a chance to start a new life. Marie fell asleep again against her will, lulled to sleep by the ongoing conversation she could not understand in the tent between Anya and the commander.

 

 

Chapter 12

Booming thunder woke Marie up an undefined time later, with a startled squeal. She blinked her eyes a few times to adjust to the darkness in the tent and pulled the furs tighter around her body, shivering against the coldness of the night. Marie frowned, when she spotted the tent flap open and Anya’s furs empty, they also looked unused so far so Anya probably had not slept at all until now.

Wind was howling around the tent strongly and rain plastered against the tent in heavy drops. The storm sounded even angrier than the last one Marie had witnessed the night before. In addition, Marie could hear people shouting orders outside, against the howling wind and bustling through the village. Their voices sounded as if the inhabitants of the village were in a frenzy and Marie frowned, wondering what was going on. It worried her, that Anya had left her alone with no orders. She waited for a few tense moments, in the vain hopes that Anya would return to her quickly, before she slowly stood up, trying not to put too much weight on her injured ankle, and keeping the fur wrapped tightly around her slight frame. She slowly limped to the open tent flap and peered outside. Grounders were running through the village, taking down tents here and there and boarding up some of the wooden structures of the village.

The tent was shaking strongly under the force of the wind and Marie looked around for any sign of Anya, Tris or even the commander. Something was not right here and she was starting to feel afraid all on her own in the midst of the hectic bustling around her. The storm was definitely stronger than the last one. Before Marie had a chance to step out of the tent, Anya appeared in her line of sight and came towards the tent with quick strides.

“What is wrong, Anya?” Marie questioned the woman worriedly, grey eyes peering up at her.

“A hurricane is coming” Anya answered her in a serious voice, barely stopping a second in her movements “We are going to seek shelter in caves that are not too far away.”

Anya directed her back into the tent and Marie helped her to the best of her abilities to gather Anya’s belongings and roll up the furs. Tris also joined them a few moments later, already packed with her own set of furs, her weapons strapped to her body.

It took them only a few minutes to get ready to leave, but the wind had already picked up even more and Tris was glancing worriedly to the dark sky only illuminated by occasional lightning.

“Come” Anya ordered both of them in a strict tone and set the pace hurriedly through the village. Marie could see others packed with their things as well. The village did not barely have enough storm-proof buildings to host everyone, which forced many people to seek shelter elsewhere.

Marie had difficulties to keep up with Anya’s unrelenting pace and her ankle started to ache more with every step she took, but staying behind in a hurricane did not sound advisable as well. Marie had heard about hurricanes in the old world before the bombs in one of her lessons. They had been common in some regions in America and used to cause a lot of damage, destroying whole cities and killing people as well. So, Marie bit her lips and tried to ignore the pain for now. A safe place for the night was definitely more important than a hurting ankle now and she still hoped that Anya’s definition of “not too far away” would truly be relatively near.

On the way through the village, Tris suddenly yanked Marie to the side and Marie watched wide eyed as the horses raced through the village on their own fleeing before the storm as well.

She had just opened her mouth to ask why the horses were on their own, when Anya already answered her unvoiced question.

“The horses can find shelter for themselves. They will return when the storm has calmed” Anya explained to Marie. It was customary for them to let the animals fend for themselves in situations of danger, the horses were all trained well enough to find their way back to their homes when everything was safe again. Anya actuated them to keep moving against the howling storm and Tris and Marie followed the woman mutely.

The rain had already soaked Marie through and through completely, after only a few moments and the girl was starting to shiver against the cold, she could not remember ever being this wet in clothes before. For her it felt like an eternity through the woods in the darkness. The girl wondered how Anya and Tris were even able to navigate them through the trees without any hesitation at all. To Marie every tree looked the same at the moment and she dearly hoped they would arrive at the caves soon. Her ankle was sending a shooting pain up into her leg and she had difficulties not to slip on the wet ground and the rain was coming down on them relentlessly.

Marie stumbled behind Anya and Tris almost blindly and she felt like sobbing in relief when Anya called them to a stop at the opening of a cave, but her relief was rather short-lived.

Anya ushered them into the cave quickly, shortly speaking with the commander.

Marie recognized the commander and Indra in the cave, but she did not recognize anyone else.

A small fire had already been lit at the entrance of the cave and Marie had to cough because the air was heavy with smoke. Although breathing was difficult like that, it was at least warmer than outside and the ground of the cave was dry as well.

To Marie’s outmost horror her furs were also soaked through completely. With a miserable expression Marie set her furs down next to Tris’ and Anya’s furs. None of them had packed any dry clothes to sleep in. Tris and Anya had started to lay down their weapons and got out of the outer layers of their clothes. Both of them had worn heavy leather coats and were much drier than Marie herself, their clothes only showing a few darker strains, where the rain had found a weaker patch in their coats.

Marie grimaced, when she lowered herself onto her fur. She could feel the water which had gathered in the thick fur being squeezed out by the addition of the weight of her body, making the water cling to her already wet clothing. She looked over at Anya’s and Tris’ fur, wondering with a scowl what the both of them had done differently, as both of their furs looked much dried than her own.

Anya regarded the girl silently from the corner of her eyes, after having reported to the commander shortly. Guards had already been assigned and none of them would be required to partake in guard duty, so they could try to catch some sleep. It was obvious that something was bothering the younger of her charges, the girl laid on her furs, almost rolled together and Anya could her frame still shake with shivers.

“Are you alright?” Anya asked Marie lowly with a frown on her face and crouched down beside the girl.

Marie just nodded silently, unwilling to look at the woman for the moment. Marie was not alright of course, she was soaking wet and cold, her ankle hurt terribly and her mood was fouler than ever.

Anya huffed under her breath, annoyed at the girl for blatantly lying her in the face again. “Stand up” she ordered sharply with a glare. Her own shirt was reasonably dry and she feared her charge might already be getting sick without sleeping wet as well. The girl’s body was surely not used to rough weather.

Marie pouted visibly, but complied with her order without any voiced protest.

Anya took the furs of the girl with a slight grimace, feeling the water dripping from it already and laid them nearer to the fire so they might dry in the night. “You have rolled them up the wrong way” she told the girl in a sharp tone. Anya shrugged out of her own shirt quickly, leaving her in some tight pants and her breast bands. She handed her own shirt to the girl with the order to change into it. It was warm enough for her to sleep topless and she hoped that the extra clothing article would warm her younger charge quicker.

Marie blinked at her in obvious confusion, looking at the shirt for long moments, before she took it tentatively and changed into it finally. She felt weird wearing the woman’s shirt, as it hung from her thin frame, reaching down to her knees and hanging off of one shoulder. She felt as if she was drowning in the material, absentmindedly Marie wondered from what material the shirt might have been woven. It felt slightly scratchier than what she was used to, but it also felt a lot warmer immediately.

Anya watched the girl change in silence, frowning slightly at the pitiful image the child presented, fiddling with some of the excess material in her fingers, grey eyes focused on the ground at her feet. Her own gaze landed at the girl’s feet and she noted how the bandage Nyko had put over Marie’s ankle was soaked as well completely and the child was barely putting any weight onto the foot. Anya directed the her to sit on her own furs and crouched down in front of the girl. She carefully removed the soaked bandage from Marie’s ankle, trying not to twist the limb around, but she could still catch the girl hissing slightly at the contact. With a worried expression Anya noticed that the girl’s ankle was swollen even more now and the slightly bluish tint of the swollen skin only added to her worry. She huffed under her breath, there was nothing they could do now to ease the girl’s pain as no healer was present in the cave. She stood up again and ordered the girl to lie down. Her lips thinned, when the girl started to struggle to stand up from her furs again. Anya put her hands onto Marie’s shoulders, pushing the child down again easily. “You cannot sleep on your own furs now, they need to dry first” she explained in a calm tone.

Marie just nodded with a relieved expression and tried to make as much room for Anya as possible, clearly understanding now that they would be sharing Anya’s furs for the night. She looked around the cave minutely, grey eyes flitting around nervously, but none of the others present seemed to judge Anya’s half-dressed state or that she planned to shar her furs with her now. It did not seem to Marie as if many were even paying any attention to her at all.

Tris had also retired to her own furs and Anya quickly went over to the commander, speaking quickly with the younger woman, before returning to her charge. She slipped beneath her furs mutely and it took Marie only a moment, before the girl snuggled a bit closer to her with a shiver trying to absorb some of the heat the woman’s body was emanating. With an annoyed huff Anya ended the girls wriggling and pulled her smaller body more tightly against her own frame. With a sigh of obvious contentment, the girl got comfortable only a few moments later and Anya could see her grey eyes drifting shut with an almost peaceful expression.

In the morning Anya’s foreboding that Marie’s body might not be prepared to deal with the changed conditions was confirmed. When she woke up, she could already feel that the girl’s skin was emanating too much heat and sweat was glistening on her fair skin. When Anya shook the girl awake a moment later, her grey eyes were slightly red and glassy, obviously having problems to focus. She sighed under her breath, hoping that Nyko would have returned to TonDC. She was unprepared to take care of a sick child, nor was she rather patient at it.

Marie felt terrible when Anya woke her up on the next morning. Her head was throbbing painfully, her throat was sore and her nose felt slightly stuffed, hindering her breathing.

The girl looked the picture of pitiful right now and Anya groaned in annoyance, it was obvious that Marie was not just a little sick, but was already suffering from a full-blown sickness. The quick onset of the disease made her frown though, she hoped the girl had only caught a common cold and nothing more severe.

Fortunately, over the course of the night the worse of the storm had already passed over the area them and it was safe again now to return to TonDC. Anya knew that much would have probably been destroyed, but they would rebuild quickly. It was not the first and surely not the last hurricane to pass through TonDC.

She ordered her younger charge to stay put for the moment, standing up to collect her clothing. It should have been dried completely after lying next to the fire through the whole night. When she turned her back to Marie, the girl audibly sucked in a harsh breath and her grey eyes were widened.

“What is it?” Anya demanded to know with a furrowed brow. Her brown eyes had quickly flitted over the cave, but no one had made any move towards them.

“Are those all kill marks?” Marie questioned with a slight tremble to her voice, grey eyes clearly showing her horror at the thought.

Anya just nodded, confused with the girl’s reaction, although she was of course aware of the many rows of kill marks spanning over her shoulders, she had stopped thinking about them a long time ago. She handed the now dried clothing back to the girl, telling her briskly to dress. She was sure that they would set back to TonDC only slightly later. The swelling in the girl’s ankle had gone down a bit overnight at least. If the girl came down with a cold, she would not be able to train physically for some time anyway.

Indra was glaring daggers at her charge from the other side of the fire with a disdainful expression on her face. “These sky children are weaklings” she hissed at Anya as the woman went to the fire to also gather Marie’s furs.

Anya huffed, rolling her eyes at the dark-skinned woman “I am sure she will astonish you sooner or later, Indra.”

Indra pursued her lips and shook her head, while Marie had started to cough “Getting sick from a little bit of rain” the disdain dripping strongly from Indra’s every word.

Anya rolled her eyes again at the other woman. From what she had understood from the girl’s description of the space ship they had lived in, there had been no weather or changes in the temperature. So, Anya was not surprised that the girl would get sick easily, her body would need time to adapt to the new surroundings as well.

In the meantime, Tris had collected food from the hunters for all of them and gave Marie her portion. “Oh, you don’t look very well” the other girl commented with a small smile.

Marie just gave her a pitiful glance and coughed some more, she looked at the food in her hands with a frown, not feeling like eating at all.

Anya and Tris had both eaten their portions fast, both aware that the group was getting ready to leave the cave and return to TonDC as quick as possible, while Marie was only picking at her food not really eating anything.

After some time, when the others had started to pack up, Anya took the food away from the girl without a word, when the girl did not show any kind of resistance, in fact barely even reacting, she felt her forehead. The girl was definitely sporting a fever already. Anya hoped that Nyko had returned from the burned village as well. She was no good at healing and was unfamiliar with most of the herbs the healer used.

“Ow!” Marie let out a pained groan, when she tried to stand on her injured ankle. “I can’t walk back, Anya” she complained in a whiny voice.

Anya’s lips formed a harsh thin line “You will walk back or do you want to stay here?” she asked sharply.

Marie gaped at her for a moment before she shook her head. Internally, she was wondering if Anya would truly just leave her here to find her way back to the village on her own, if she was not able to keep up with the others.

“We can go slower now, Marie” Anya reassured the girl in a softer tone, when she spotted the girl’s expression falling and waited for her to limp to the entrance of the cave.

The commander’s horse had already found its owner and Lexa had already mounted the huge mare. Even under the influence of the fever Marie was enamoured with the horse and admired the horse from afar for a moment.

None of the others at the cave were injured or sick, so Lexa offered to take the girl with her on her horse, when she spotted how unsteady the girl seemed on her feet, swaying in place slightly.

Anya would have liked to decline, not wanting to show favouritism to the girl, but she knew that the way back would be longer without the storm pressing their pace. And as a bonus Indra’s expression of disbelief was enough for Anya to hoist the girl up in front of Lexa.

Lexa snaked an arm around the girl’s smaller body to keep her safe on the horse.

“Thank you, commander” Marie said with wonder clear in her voice and started to cough again right after.

The bulky man next to the commander said something to her in trigedasleng, but Lexa just waved him off dismissively. 

When the horse started to move Marie let out a startled yelp and clawed her fingers into the mare’s mane to what the horse whinnied back.

“Easy there” Lexa spoke softly to Marie and pried her fingers loose from her horse’s mane “You are spooking skairasha. I won’t let you fall off.” She snacked an arm around the girl’s body, pulling her closer to herself and making sure the girl would surely not fall down.

Marie nodded a bit reassured and leaned more firmly into the body of the commander to feel securer on the horse, unused to the heights and the movements of the horse.

 

 

 

Chapter 13

Shortly after their journey had started, Marie could not keep her eyes open any longer, she felt hot and cold simultaneously and her whole body ached. She tried to keep her eyes open forcefully, but the longer her tried, the stronger her eyes burned and she could already feel tears escaping her eyes and running down her cheeks, before she gave into the exhaustion and let them fall close, drifting off almost immediately.

Lexa frowned, when she felt the girl’s body slacken in front of her in the saddle. They had only crossed a short distance yet and she had to tighten her arms around Marie’s smaller body to keep the child in the saddle with her. She put a hand on the girl’s forehead worriedly and noticed that a strong fever was waging war within the child’s body. The commander urged her horse into a faster trot, the girl needed to see a healer as soon as possible. Quiet a lot of her people were lost to sickness and fevers; their healers were not always able to help their sick. The girl was small and scrawny, her body not used to the temperature drop. Marie needed to put on some weight and muscle or she would not survive the next winter breath. She had noticed how both Marie’s and the boy’s skin, who had been brought to TonDC with her, were fair and pale, untouched by the sun, giving both of them an almost sickly complexion.

When they finally reached TonDC, the extent of the devastation the storm had caused was evident. All of the tents that had not been dismantled on time in the night before had been completely destroyed, leaving only occasional broken off posts and ripped rags behind. Huge branches from the trees around the village had been ripped from the trees and had been blown into the village. The only buildings completely unscathed, had been those built out of robust wood or bricks.

All around the village, people were already working on removing everything which had been destroyed the previous night. Lexa could see that her tent had already been erupted again in the middle of the village as well and a small group was starting to erupt the general’s tent also. The healer’s hut was one of the sturdier buildings of TonDC, so it had survived the storm without any damage.

Lexa steered her mare directly to the healer’s hut and waited until Anya had caught up with her. Without Marie slowing the group down, the rest of the warriors had reached TonDC fairly quickly. She gave the unconscious girl over to Anya and dismounted her horse. A young second who had started to work at the stables for now came running to take skairasha’s reins over and bring the horse to the stables.

Anya took Marie into the healer’s hut and laid her down onto one of the cots. To her utter dismay, the hut was empty as Nyko had not returned yet. She let her gaze wander around the hut helplessly, trying to look for herbs she recognized, but as Anya was completely unfamiliar with all the herbs dangling from the ceiling, it was an impossible task. She never had had children of her own and when Lexa or Tris had been ill, there had always been a healer, so she never had to take care of them on her own in case of sickness.

In the meantime, Marie had started to shiver so much, that her teeth rattled together audibly. Anya bundled up some furs and packed the shivering girl tightly into them, in the hopes of getting her warm again. She also quickly stocked a small fire in the fireplace of the hut to raise the temperature in the hut. Anya sniffed at the different herbs dubiously with a frown on her face, trying to find something to lower the girl’s high fever. The only herbs she could identify for sure were herbs to numb pain, so nothing that would help Marie now. She got stuck with two different herbs, looking between them with narrowed eyes. They looked similar, too similar for her to settle on one and in the back of her mind, she thought to remember that one would induce a deep sleep and the other lower the fever.  Annoyed with her own incompetence, Anya huffed and pulled the furs tighter around the girl, before she left the hut in search of someone with at least some basic healing skills. The girl seemed to be burning up and Anya highly doubted that her fever would vanish without any interference, she knew how deadly a strong fever could be. 

Every inhabitant of TonDC was outside and they were all working hand in hand to erase the devastation as quickly as possible. Anya knew from experience, that the last traces of the damage would be wiped away in a day or two at most.

She stopped one of the warriors, who had been on guard duty the last night “Has anyone seen Lincoln return?” she asked him briskly. Anya knew that Lincoln had been supposed to keep watch of the sky children’s camp and he was the only one of who she knew for sure that he was versed in the art of healing.

The warrior shook his head in the negative “Not that I am aware, but I will ask around.”

Anya nodded with a frown, wondering what might have delayed Lincoln’s return. The man had been due to make another report last night already and she hoped that he had a good reason for his delay. She continued her way through the village with quick purposeful strides, she knew that Lexa was overseeing the rebuilding of the communal hall of the village. “Is any of the handmaids who accompanied you to TonDC familiar with healing?” Anya asked the commander, hoping that the woman could offer some last resort.

Lexa eyed her general with a questioning gaze, brow raised in silence.

“Nyko has not returned yet, neither has Lincoln from observing the invaders” Anya explained in an annoyed tone “The girl is burning up and I don’t know what herbs to give her.” It was clear, that she was annoyed about having to ask for help, but she would not do her charge any favour otherwise.

The commander gestured to one of her guards “Go and fetch Alira” she ordered sharply and the man inclined his head immediately, turning on his heel and leaving the communal hall without another word. While Lexa already gestured to another guard “Assemble a search party for Lincoln.”

The man nodded in confirmation and left as well.

“You worry for Lincoln?” Anya asked, remaining beside the commander with a slightly raised brow.

“He may have only been delayed, but a scout going missing is never a good sign” Lexa said in a cautious tone, her expression not betraying any of her feelings on the matter. They still did not know how dangerous the sky kids were and an armed group of them had been trespassing in Trikru land the day before. She would do well not to underestimate them after they had burnt down one of their villages.

Before they could continue their conversation, one of the guards returned with Alira in toe. Alira was one of her older handmaids who had already served for the commander before her. Lexa knew the woman had a broad knowledge and was loyal to the bone.

“Are you familiar with treating someone with a high fever, Alira?” Lexa addressed the woman.

The older woman nodded respectfully and her dark eyes flitted over the commander’s form quickly, obviously trying to judge if Lexa was sick herself.

“You are to follow Anya’s orders for now, Alira” Lexa commanded and dismissed both of them, returning her attention to the rebuilding immediately.

Alira followed behind Anya’s fast strides silently and Anya ushered her to the healer’s hut. 

Anya noted immediately that Marie’s shivering had only increased in the time she had been away and her whole frame shook violently now, her breathing sounded laboured as well, adding to her internal worry.

Alira took over the care of the sick child immediately and the first thing she did, was removing the furs from the overheated girl.

Anya stepped in front of the woman, taking a hold of her wrist, stopping her movements. Her voice was harsh as she addressed the handmaid with a furrow to her brow “What are you doing? She is clearly cold.”

Alira shook her head in the negative, waiting for the general to let go of her wrists as determination edged into her face. “The fever has to be brought down first. The shivering will cease afterwards” she tried to reason with the other woman.

Anya’s brown eyes bore into the dark ones of the handmaid for long moments, until she let go of her wrist again and took a slight step back.

The older woman took warm water from the kettle over the fire, poured it into an empty mug and walked around the hut taking different herbs here and there, adding them to the water. She minced different herbs together and crushed them to a paste that had a strong almost biting smell.

Anya continued to watch the woman like a hawk, still not convinced of her knowledge and if she might just want to worsen the girl’s condition even further. She knew, that not everyone had been pleased to hear the decision that Marie would be staying with them.

Alira took the girl’s shirt off to apply the paste to her chest and back to ease the laboured breathing. The tea had simmered enough and she manoeuvred the girl into a sitting position afterwards, forcing the brew down her throat with some gentle coaxing. “I need cool water now” Alira exclaimed in Anya’s direction, still coaxing the girl to drink the tea.

Anya inclined her head and grabbed an empty bowl. She hesitated for a moment, before she nodded towards the woman, still not feeling entirely well leaving the girl alone with the unknown handmaid. But the woman obviously had Lexa’s trust, so without another viable option, that would have to suffice for now. She went to collect some water from a nearby stream in a hurry, wanting to return as quickly as possible. When she returned to the hut, the mug had been emptied and Marie had been undressed to her underwear. The handmaid directly took the water from her, dumping some cloths into the cool liquid and positioning the wet cloths over the girl’s leg and chest.

Anya just stayed beside her and continued watching the woman work in silence.

“The wet cloths will help to lower her temperature more quickly. It is dangerously high right now. Her body does not seem able to fight the illness well” Alira explained to Anya’s unvoiced question and Anya noted on the badly veiled worry underlining the handmaid’s tone.

Anya inclined her head in acknowledgement, settling down on one of the chairs next to Marie’s bed, when the handmaid told her that they now needed to wait. Fortunately, the effects of Alira’s treatment could be seen a short time later already. Marie’s breathing had become more even again and her temperature was lowered. The girl’s forehead was still hot to the touch, but she did not seem to be burning up this severely any longer. The girl’s shaking had also decreased and Alira packed the girl into the furs again and made a new batch of tea for later.

“General, no offence” Alira started with a calm expression a few moments later “There is no need for you to keep her vigil as well. I will continue to monitor the girl.”

Anya looked at the woman with raised brows. Her lips thinned in irritation at the woman and the way she was now trying to order her around. “You are aware of who you are treating there?” she demanded to know rather harshly, glowering at the other woman.

Alira nodded with an honest expression “She is your second now, the girl who fell from the stars. Not that it matters to me, but word travels fast through the camp” she answered calmly, clearly unfazed by the general’s anger.

“You do not harbour any ill will towards her?” Anya implored with a piercing glare, still not yet convinced entirely.

The woman shook her head in denial with an open expression “It is not my place to carry ill will towards her. She is a child still and Heda seems to hold her in high regards that is good enough for me.”

Anya nodded cautiously, but the woman’s words had sounded honest enough. So, she turned on her heels and left the hut. She still had her duty as a general and Tris to look after anyway, although somehow leaving the girl behind did feel off somehow.

~~~

The next two days passed in a blur to Marie, as she continued to slip between consciousness and deliriousness constantly, her fever seemingly not being affected by Alira’s attempts to heal her. Alira stayed by her side almost constantly, sleeping in the healer’s hut for the time being and Anya was there, whenever she could spare a few minutes.

In all the time, Nyko still had yet to return, so they would have to take care of the child on their own for now. The fever always climbed back after a few hours and Anya had begun to fear the girl would not survive the sickness, her fear rising with every hour without a positive change.

On the third day, Alira declared that the fever had finally broke for real and that the child would surely survive now.

Anya took in the news with a relieved sigh, but it worried her still that Marie was still not coherent again. The girl’s skin was too pale and she seemed to have lost even more weight during the last three days, giving her face an even sicker impression.

“Go and get some real rest, Alira” Anya ordered the woman, as the handmaid had watched over the girl the whole last night on her own again. “I will stay for now” she proclaimed firmly. There was nothing which needed her immediate attention as Tris had joined a hunting group, giving her a few free hours.

Alira nodded her agreement in silence and left the hut to sleep in the tent reserved for the handmaids which travelled with the commander.

Anya sat down next to the cot, Marie was still sleeping in and gently took one of the child’s small hands into her own. She was relieved to feel that the child’s skin finally felt normal to the touch again. She noted absentmindedly how soft the girl’s skin was which was proof to the fact that the girl was unused to any kind of physical labour or fighting. Where her own fingers were calloused and littered with various scars, Marie’s small slender fingers were entirely smooth still. She squeezed the girl’s fingers lightly and startled slightly when she felt an answering squeeze from the child’s fingers. “Marie” Anya addressed the girl in a soft tone, trying to rouse her back into consciousness carefully.

It took Marie a few moments to blink her eyes open again and when she did, she immediately began to cough heavily.  “Anya…” Marie’s grey eyes showed her confusion and her voice was raspy “…what happened?”

“Wait” Anya ordered her charge and let go of her hand minutely to get the girl some more tea, hoping that it would sooth her scratchy throat and make talking easier. “Drink” Anya gave the cup to the girl and Marie took a few sips slowly, grimacing at the bitter taste of the brew immediately.

“You became sick after the storm” Anya explained in a soft tone, worry still lingering in her brown eyes, ignoring the girl’s grimace for now.

“How long…?” Marie wanted to know with a puzzled expression, trying to remember what happened, but her memories were fuzzy and unclear.

“You have been in and out of consciousness for three days now” Anya answered calmly, feeling the child’s forehead again, checking that her temperature had not risen again.

Marie looked at her with wide disbelieving eyes “That long?!”

Anya nodded with gentleness in her brown eyes “You got me worried there, ai skaifaya.”

“What does that mean?” Marie questioned Anya with curiosity written on her face, she remembered that the woman had used the term before but had not explained its translation to her yet.

“It translates to my star in your language” Anya explained after a long moment of silence somewhat reluctant. Anya decided quickly that the child’s blinding smile was enough to make up for her own discomfort.

Before the girl could utter her next words, the door to the hut was opened and Lincoln stumbled inside. Anya whirled around and quickly took in the man’s condition with a frown. He was wearing Skykru clothes and Anya could see bruises and cuts through the open jacket on his chest and one hand was wrapped in a thick bandage, blood seeping through slowly.

Marie looked at the stranger with wide eyes and a slightly open mouth, the man was obviously wounded and looked as if he had been trashed or in a heavy fight.

“What happened to you, Lincoln?” Anya demanded to know harshly and forced the man to sit on the cot opposite of Marie, as Lincoln looked as if he might drop any second. Which was exactly what he did only moments later, his eyes rolled back and the man lost consciousness.

 

 

Chapter 14

Anya told Marie to stay put under her furs and hurried out of the healer’s hut with purposeful strides to alarm Lexa and collect Alira again. It was obvious that Lincoln was in dire need of some healing and the commander would surely wish to know that their scout had returned to call back the others seeking for him. On her way through the village, Anya was told that the commander was still occupied in the newly rebuilt communal hall, so she sought it out first. It was a fortunate instance, that Alira had went there as well and was still updating the commander on the sky girl’s changed condition.

Lexa’s green eyes showed their slight confusion at spotting Anya with them, before the general could speak.

“Lincoln has returned” Anya reported quickly to Lexa with a serious expression and an undertone of anger in her voice “And he is injured, lost consciousness before I came here.”

Lexa looked at Anya with a furrowed brow “Did he tell you, why he just returned now?”

Anya shook her head in the negative “He collapsed, before he could tell me anything.”

The commander inclined her head in mute acknowledgement, but Anya could see the slight tightening of the brunette’s jaw. She was familiar enough with Lexa to recognize the small change for a sign of anger. Both of them obviously had come to the same conclusion, it was unlikely that Lincoln had just been delayed by the hurricane. The scout was too familiar with the woods around them and would have easily found shelter, so it was probable that the Sky children had a hand in his condition.

Together, the three women went back to the healer’s hut, where they found Lincoln still lying unconscious on the cot next to Marie and the girl had fixed the stranger with an unblinking stare.

At the sound of their entrance, Marie startled strongly, grey eyes widened as she looked up to them.

Lexa looked at the girl with a calm expression and the corners of her lips ghosted upwards in the hint of a smile, her tone was reassuring and honest, when she addressed the girl. “It is good to see you coherent again, Marie” she acknowledged the child with a slight nod. The girl seemed openminded and curious enough, to have a chance at adapting to their culture. It had been surprising to see her horses reacting like this to the unfamiliar girl and she trusted their judgement. Something must be about the girl for them to accept her this easily. Anya had also told her, that the child seemed to develop a deep trust to her as well, enhancing her chances at survival. It would have been a shame, if the child died because of a simple sickness and she was honestly relieved to see her recovered.

“Thank you” Marie replied with a shy smile, voice slightly subdued, still not feeling too comfortable around the younger leader. “I am feeling better already” she added after a beat, before a new bout of coughing interrupted her words, watering her eyes with its force. She was visibly out of breath, a grimace on her face, as she gently felt along her throat, before her grey eyes returned to Lincoln.

Alira had directly went to the unconsciousness man and was quickly divesting him of the jacket, he was wearing.

What was revealed underneath the fabric, made Marie gasp loudly at the sight, grey eyes widening in disbelief.

Lexa and Anya both clenched their teeth angrily, the wounds left on Lincoln’s body agreeing with what they had been expecting already. They did not match with wounds, you would expect from an accident, but clearly looked to have been caused by physical torture. The warrior’s torso was lined with bloody welts and bruises and some round marks that appeared to have been burned into his flesh.

Lexa’s mouth tightened at the sight, anger rising in her mind. Lincoln had been tasked to observe the Sky children’s camp, so it was probable that they were responsible for his condition, adding another sin of war to their misdeeds. Another clan, would not have been foolish enough to let a captured scout escape alive and there was peace among the clans now. But what was revealed under the bloody bandage on the warrior’s hand, made the commander really grind her teeth in silent seething anger.

A tool of some kind had been pierced completely through the man’s hand and left there. When Anya helped Alira to pull the bulkier man into a sitting position to take a look at his back, they found it in a similar condition to his front littered with welts and bruises as well.

Marie watched the proceedings with horror etched deeply into her features. It took her long moments, to understand that this kind of damage could have only been inflicted by another human and definitely not by some kind of animal.

Alira had started mutely to gather everything, she would need to clean and take care of all the wounds.

Anya and Lexa were both silently staring at the warrior, none of them actually paying Marie any attention at the moment.

“First they burn down a village and now this!” Lexa fumed through clenched teeth, her hands balled into fists at her hips.

Marie gulped loudly as it clicked in her mind that the commander could only mean the other 100. “The other delinquents did this?” she asked, horror and disbelief battling on her features.

Anya nodded in acknowledgement with fury dancing in the general’s brown eyes. She was confused slightly, that the girl had obviously not come to the conclusion already on her own from the Skykru clothes to Lincoln’s condition. But she also saw the fear clearly evident in the girl’s grey eyes and that they were already glistening with unshed tears. The invaders had clearly declared war on them now and in a way, which could not be ignored any longer. First burning down a village and now torturing one of them, were all acts of war and Trikru had to answer them soon. A few silent tears were rolling down the girl’s cheeks already, as she watched Alira clean the wounds the other 100 had inflicted on the Trikru warrior.

Only a few days ago, when Marie had heard John getting tortured by Trikru warriors, she had been deathly afraid and sure that her people would never be this cruel to another. And now, she was proven wrong, the other delinquents had done exactly the same thing to the warrior. Even if she was unfamiliar with the ways of the warriors of Trikru, Marie instinctively knew that there would be deathly consequences for the other 100 now. A small voice in her mind wondered, if she would be subjected to the same consequences, but before she could actually work up the courage to ask, what would happen with them now, Indra burst into the hut fury suddenly and worry was clear on her face. Marie absentmindedly noted, that it was the first time she now saw Indra’s expression not filled with hate, distrust and disgusts. So, it seemed logical that the woman was somehow connected to the injured warrior on a personal level.

The dark-skinned warrior let her dark eyes scan Lincoln’s exposed body quickly and the visible worry for him, was replaced by fury only a second later. “Skykru?” came Indra’s angry hiss through clenched teeth.

Marie saw the commander nod in mute agreement towards the dark-skinned warrior.

The warrior set her blazing eyes to Marie for a moment. Marie startled strongly under the intensity of the woman's glare, pulling the furs tighter around her body and making herself even smaller on the bed. She was surprised slightly, when Indra seemed to swallow down her angry retort, when she noted on the tear tracks glistening on her pale face.

“Blood must have blood, Heda” Indra demanded forcefully a moment later, after her eyes had left the girl and returned to the commander.

Marie shivered in fear, goose bumps rising on her arms, as her eyes darted between the three women in the hut. She did not know exactly, what the woman’s words meant, but it sounded as if Indra was asking for retribution made out of blood.

“Let me kill the sky boy first and assemble our warriors to march on their camp at sunrise” Indra continued with conviction colouring her voice strongly.

Marie just now remembered, that John might still be in TonDC at all and felt slightly guilty for having forgotten about him completely. She also absentmindedly noted, that Indra had left herself out of her words, which gave her the slightest bit of hope that she would not be part of the penalty awaiting the other 100.

The commander silenced the angry warrior with a sharp gesture of her hand and answered the woman in the grounder tongue, so that Marie was unable to understand their conversation any longer.

Marie cast a worried glance to Anya, seeking reassurance from the woman. The stern woman had promised her that as her first, she was bound to protect her from physical harm. Marie wondered what would be happening to her, if the commander chose to execute her as well. She was not familiar with their ranking system, but something told her that the commander’s sentence would overrule anything, Anya could say.

Anya, Indra and Lexa kept debating between the three of them for a few minutes in their native language, while Alira continued to take care of Lincoln in silence, not even listening to the words of the others.

Marie could only watch their expressions with rising worry. The only thing she could clearly identify on their faces was a shared sense of anger and thirst for revenge.

The warrior had not woken up despite the cleaning of his wounds, Alira finished by applying a greenish paste to the welts on his torso and lastly turning her attention to the tool still lodged into the warrior’s hand. The woman grimaced at the sight. The skin around the tool looked swollen and the blood had coagulated around it, so it seemed to have been there for some time already. She could only hope, that she would be able to contain the beginning infection or the man would loose his hand.

Alira interrupted the ongoing debate, calling Anya and Indra over to help. “I will pull it out of his hand now, I fear he will wake from the sensation. Keep him still, the wounds need to be sealed shut immediately” Alira explained, she had already placed two daggers into the small fire in the fire pit in preparation.

Marie was overseeing the procedure silently and continued to drink her tea to suppress the urge to cough for a bit, while a few tears were still running down her cheeks. She had watched the woman care for the injured warrior in silence and she had frowned in confusion when the woman had placed the daggers into the fire. Sour bile rose in her throat at the prospect for what they were going to be used now.

The commander left the hut without a further word, intending to organize a few troops to attack the Sky children soon. While Anya and Indra crouched into position next to the shoulders of Lincoln pressing down with their hands to immobilize him as best as possible.

Alira nodded to both of them and with one sudden strong pull, she dislodged the tool from the warrior’s hand. Lincoln’s eyes shot open in the exact same second and he let out a piercing scream of pain, freezing the blood in Marie's veins at the intensity of pain lacing his tone, trying to wrestle away from the hands pressing his torso down.

“It’s alright, Lincoln” Indra tried to sooth the shocked warrior in a much softer tone than Marie had thought the woman capable of using  “Keep still, the wounds have to be sealed now.”

A flicker of recognition passed through Lincoln’s dazed eyes and he nodded sharply, biting his lips in obvious preparation. Marie was surprised at the man's sudden stoicism, she could only try to imagine his pain.

The bloody tool had been dropped onto the floor by Alira and the woman returned with the gleaming daggers in both hands. Anya had let go of the man’s shoulder and instead kept a firm grip on his wrist. Blood was already running down the arm freely now.

Alira nodded to Anya and pressed both daggers simultaneously on both sides of the bleeding wound. Lincoln let out a heavy grunt of pain through forcefully clenched teeth and a bit of smoke emanated from his hand, while the smell of burning flesh filled the hut.

Marie had to fight hard against the sudden urge to vomit. She could still hear his pained scream ringing through her mind and added together with the smell of burning flesh, she only felt sick.

A few moments later Alira took the daggers from the wound and gently inspected the hand. The bleeding had stopped and the skin had blistered shut. As gently as possible, Alira cleaned the blood away with clean wet cloths and applied a reddish paste to the sealed wound wrapping a clean bandage around the blistered area afterwards.

Lincoln’s lips had been pressed into a thin line and he did not utter any moans of pain at all, silently bearing the treatment, while Indra kept whispering words in their tongue to the man.

Anya had let go of the man’s wrist and crouched down next to Marie. The girl was observing the scene with horrified wide eyes, she had never witnessed anything like that ever before. The smell of burned flesh was still heavy in the air of the hut and the girl tried to breathe through her mouth against the stench. The girl was feeling sick to her stomach and shivered slightly from the shock, her eyes fixed on the bloody tool on the floor.

Anya gently touched the girl’s shoulder to get her attention and the girl startled strongly scooting away from the touch as if physically struck. She had let go of the mug still clenched in her hands and the remaining tea was spilled onto the furs as the mug fell to the floor. The grey wide eyes were now fixed on Anya’s face, but the girl’s gaze was unfocused and her eyes unseeing.

“Marie” Anya addressed the girl in a soothing tone “It is alright. Breathe, ai skaifaya.”

The term of endearment seemed to do the trick and snapped the girl out of her shock somewhat. Marie blinked at Anya and sniffed with her tears.

Shusha” Anya soothed the girl in a gentle tone “Everything will be just fine.” She picked the empty mug up from the floor and put it onto the small table next to them, standing up to exchange the wet fur for dry ones.

Marie’s eyes followed Anya’s movements and she gratefully accepted the new fur, directly snuggling into it to stem her shivering.

In the meantime, Alira had made a tea against the pain for Lincoln and handed the warrior a streaming mug. When she saw that the girl had spilled her own tea, she begun preparing a new one for her as well.

Indra was quietly conversing with Lincoln in their own language. The warrior seemed more coherent than Marie would have thought possible because of his injuries.

When Marie accepted the newly made tea from Alira with a grateful nod and a mumbled “thanks” the commander re-entered the hut.

Lexa directly started to interrogate Lincoln, voice strong and expression stoic “What happened to you?”

Lincoln started to tell them, that he had found a wounded sky girl in the woods and he had taken her with him to his cave and cared for her wounds. When she had tried to flee and they had seen the group of armed Skykru being followed and rounded up by the Trikru warriors, he had brought her back to his cave. The girl had gotten the better of him and knocked him unconscious with a rock against his head. When he woke up, other Skykru had been with the girl and he had stabbed one of them in self-defence. The others overpowered him together and he had woken up chained in the metal contraption they had landed in. He had been held there and tortured for information for an unknown time. The girl he had captured helped him flee, when the Skykru children had consumed bad Jobi nuts. He had made his way back to TonDC directly after, to report to his Heda.

Marie listened with wide eyes, as Lincoln described their torture methods to get the information which antidote would save the stabbed boy. The round brand wounds stemmed from cables used to give him electronic shocks. Marie wondered, how the warrior had even survived that kind of torture at all and was still able to travel the distance between the crash site and TonDC.

The others listened silently as well, only the commander adding another question here and there.

Lincoln declared that he had not given up any information at all, only that the girl knew for sure that he was able to understand their language. The commander nodded, she knew how strong her warriors were, and none would crumble easily under physical torture.

“Rest, Lincoln” Lexa said and nodded to the warrior, leaving the hut with Indra and Alira in toe, as the handmaid’s attention was not needed here any longer for the moment.

When Lincoln’s dark blood-shot eyes finally met Marie’s gaze, the girl startled again and had the strong urge to flee from the warrior, expecting him to have the need to seek revenge with her. Surprisingly, the warrior’s gaze held no particular ill will towards her at all, if anything he seemed slightly curious to see her. Marie still stood out and her light blonde hair was unusual for Trikru and paired together with her light grey eyes, it made her stand out as a stranger even more on first glance.

Anya had taken a protective stance next to her charge, but relaxed again as she saw the curiosity in Lincoln’s eyes, which reminded her of the almost gentle child the warrior once had been. But as the warrior just regarded the girl silently, Anya could see the warrior’s eyes starting to droop from the tea against the pain. It took a few more minutes before the warrior’s body slackened and he fell asleep.

“You can return to our tent now” Anya told Marie in a kind tone and took the emptied mug and the furs from her.

Marie nodded and slowly stood up, gingerly testing her ankle. It was still a bit sensitive, but the swelling seemed gone now. Anya nevertheless kept a steadying hand on the small of her back and set a leisure pace as she led the girl through the camp back towards their tent.

 

 

Chapter 15

After a few moments of silent walking through the camp, Marie finally voiced the question out loud that had been ghosting through her mind non-stop for some time now “What will happen now with the other 100?” She had noticed that Anya was walking much slower, but Marie was grateful for it. Her ankle still hurt slightly and she was able to place her feet more carefully at this pace.

Anya considered her charge for some time, brown eyes flitting over to the young girl minutely, before she answered the girl’s question in a hushed tone “Messengers will have been sent to the nearing villages by now to raise an army to march on your dropship in the next days.” She watched the girl’s reaction from the corner of her eyes carefully. Anya could fathom that the impending war could be difficult to grasp for her young charge.

Marie gulped audibly, grey eyes widening slightly, but other than that stayed silent, what was there for her to say anyway? But she was surprised at the efficiency of the warriors, she would have expected that it took more time to organize a war. She was aware that her place was now in TonDC by Anya’s side, so she tried to tell herself that it should not matter to her what happened to the other 100.

The way through the camp exhausted the girl more than it should have, but Anya had expected nothing less. The illness had eaten away even more strength from the young girl, not that she had possessed much of it to begin with and she would have to take it easy on the girl during training in the upcoming coming days.

Marie was relieved, when they finally reached their tent and she settled down on her furs immediately, grateful to get the weight of her ankle again.

“You can rest for a few hours now, Marie” Anya told the girl in a kind tone “I will be training Tris, we will be in the fighting pits”, she turned around to leave the tent again.

“I don’t need to train now?” Marie asked with confusion colouring her tone, stopping the woman’s retreat. She had not been sure, if Anya would care that she was still injured and not healthy again.

Anya shook her head with a soft expression “You are not well enough yet for physical training. I will give you lessons that don’t involve physical exertion later.” She watched as the girl settled down in the pellet of furs more comfortably and left her there. On her way to the training pits, she gave one of the guards an order to keep an eye on her tent and the girl for her. She did not truly expect that Marie would be trying to flee or something else, as the girl had not shown any rebellious tendencies before, but it was still possible that the girl would react more severely than she had predicted to the news of the impending war between Trikru and Skykru. It was also reasonable to expect growing hostility towards Marie now that there would be war officially. Anya was not sure, if Lexa would have officially proclaimed it already or not yet, but it was better to have someone keep an eye on her charge just to be sure. She could only hope that her younger charge had accepted or at least would accept quickly that she now belonged to Trikru, but she would have to speak to Lexa about an official initiation of the girl to Trikru, so that no one would mistake her for Skykru in the future.

Even tough Marie’s body was tired and weakened from her illness, her mind was racing and she needed a long time to finally fall asleep and she had a rather restless sleep, with nightmares plaguing her slumber. In them, she saw herself chained in the cell she had been held in during the first night in TonDC. Anya and Lexa entered the cell with feral expressions on both of their faces and started to torture her for information. They used different forms of torture, ranging from whippings, to slashing at her skin with glistening daggers or at last even removing fingers. In her dream, Marie was pleading with Anya and Lexa, begging them to stop, offering to tell them whatever they wished, but the women did not even hesitate for a second, expressions full of glee at her obvious pain. This particular nightmare alternated with a different scene. There, Marie was part of the 100 again. Instead of Lincoln chained in the dropship there were Anya, Tris and Lexa. The others were torturing them, in exactly the same way Lincoln had been tortured and demanded that she joined in. Screams from all three of them echoing loud and shrill around the small room. In her dream, she had tried to fight against Bellamy and Clarke, shouting at them to let them go, but a cable emitting sparks was pushed into her hands instead and Bellamy physically forced her to brand Anya with it. She cried, as the woman’s skin was slowly filled with blisters.

The guard who was supposed to keep watch over the general’s tent heard the girl moaning and shouting and guessed that the girl was caught in a nightmare. He walked around the tent quickly, just to make sure that no one had gotten in without his notice, but the tent was intact and when he quickly looked inside, he could only see the girl twisting beneath her furs. He waited for a certain amount of time, hoping that the girl would settle on her own and when the noises continued on, he went to search the general herself. He did not know, if he should try to wake the girl up and thought it best to ask the general on further direction. The young man found the general on the training pit in sword combat with her second Tris.

“General” he called loudly from the side line to get Anya’s attention.

Anya ordered Tris to practise some moves on her own and turned to the guard with a rather worried expression, wiping sweat from her brow with the back of her hand, she asked the young man in a sharp tone “What is it?”

The guard seemed unsure of himself and shuffled his feet slightly, he straightened up immediately, when he noticed the general’s expression turning into a glare “The girl seems to be caught up in nightmares, I wasn’t sure if you want me to wake her…” his expression clearly showed how uncomfortable the whole situation made him.

Anya huffed under her breath in light annoyance, she had feared that the girl would not handle the situation well. “No, I will take care of it. Return to your duty” she dismissed the young man back to his original post briskly.

The guard nodded with an obviously relived expression and left the training pit.

“Report to Indra for your guard duty, Tris” Anya instructed Tris quickly and left her other second back in the training pits.

When Anya reached her tent, she could already hear Marie’s whimpers from outside. As she entered, the girl was mumbling in sleep, voice pleading “No, … not Anya. Please stop…No…”.

Anya crouched down next to the sleeping girl, who was tossing around restlessly under the furs and shook her shoulders to rouse her from her nightmare. She wondered about what exactly the girl had been dreaming, she had clearly heard her own name and it had suspiciously sounded, as if Marie had begged her to stop with something. She frowned slightly as she could not remember being overly harsh with the child yet, so the girl should not have a reason to fear her.

With a startled gasp, Marie opened her eyes immediately at the contact. Her grey eyes were wide with horror and cold sweat glistened on her face. She needed long moments, before she could truly focuse her gaze on Anya’s face and when she really recognized the woman, she started to cry and flung herself at the unexpecting woman.

Anya had been utterly taken by surprise, by the girl’s body colliding with her midriff and had to balance them both on the balls of her feet, before they landed on the floor in a heap together. She could feel the girl’s hands clawing at her shirt and her smaller body was shaken by deep sobs. Gently Anya rubbed the girl’s back in a circular soothing motion and her voice was soft as she reassured her young charge “Everything is alright. It was just a dream.”

Marie loosened her hard grip of Anya’s shirt and backed up a slight distance, shaking her head vehemently, tears still streaming down her face and her voice quivered strongly as she began to relay to Anya about what she had dreamt “You were there and Lexa and Tris …”

“Where?” Anya asked, brow raised in confusion and brown eyes inquiring.

“In the dropship. You were all chained to the walls and the others … the others they … they tortured you … and they wanted me to join as well … I couldn’t…” the girl gasped out, still crying and sobbing.

Anya took a deep breath “Look at me Marie” she ordered in a stern voice, backing off a little, so that she could look better into Marie’s grey eyes.

The girl obliged immediately, almost scrambling back at the light push Anya gave her frame, but she was still crying. She tried to control her tears, but her breathing still hitched with sobs.

“I am here, Marie. Tris is here and Lexa as well” Anya reassured her charge in an even tone “It was only a dream” she emphasised strongly.

Marie nodded with a miserable expression and tried to stop her tears, taking loudly shuddering breaths.

Anya squeezed the girl’s shoulders reassuringly “That’s it. Calm down. Deep even breaths. Everything is well.”

Slowly, the girl calmed her breathing again and she was only sniffling softly now from time to time.

Before Anya could say anything more, Tris ducked into the tent and smiled at Marie kindly. “You’re back” the girl sounded honestly relived “I’m glad you’re better, Marie.” She completely ignored the way that Marie had obviously just been crying, grey eyes red and puffy, tear tracks still glistening on her pale cheeks.

Marie nodded and tried to smile at her, but as hard as she tried, she was unable to muster a real smile right now. She was nevertheless relieved to see Tris in person again and seeing physical proof that her nightmare had only been her imagination playing tricks on her mind.

Anya shooed Tris away sternly, only a short moment later “You have guard duty to attend to, Tris. Do not slacken now. You can talk to Marie after she has rested some more.”

Tris nodded in silent acknowledgment and gave the younger girl one cheering last smile, before she ducked out of the tent again, leaving Marie and Anya on their own.

“Do you think you can fall asleep again?” Anya asked Marie, although she did not expect a positive answer. It would probably be better for the girl to catch as much sleep as possible, but there would be no use in trying to force her to sleep either.

Marie directly shook her head in the negative, expression showing her slight fear at even thinking to sleep again now. She did not want to sleep anymore and she did not want to be alone right now either and Anya would surely leave again otherwise.

Anya accepted the girl’s refusal to go back to sleep, even though she would have preferred if the girl tried to rest more, but she understood her reluctance. “I will get us some food shortly” Anya told Marie and made to stand up, when Marie suddenly took her wrist in a vice like grip.

The girl looked at Anya with wide pleading eyes, widened in obvious fright “Please don’t leave” and the child’s voice sounded awfully subdued.

Anya gently pried the girl’s fingers from her wrist “I will return in a few moments. Nothing will happen, Marie” she shook her head with a stern expression.

The girl still looked rather pleadingly and vulnerable, but Anya was unwilling to indulge her young charge. She was already much softer with Marie, than she ever had been with Tris or Lexa before. Marie would never grow into a warrior, if she did not toughen up quickly and Anya had no intention to mollycoddle the girl.

Marie made no attempt to halt Anya’s retreat again and buried herself back into her furs. She felt chastised slightly by the woman’s refusal to stay and felt childish for having asked at all. The minutes still seemed to stretch into hours, before Anya finally returned again with their food and Marie had to forcefully keep her breathing calm and even the whole time.

When Anya finally returned with a plate of food for them to share and a steaming mug of new tea for Marie, the girl let out a relived breath and felt herself calm again instantly in the woman’s presence.

Anya sat down on her own furs opposite of Marie and placed the plate on the floor between them after handing the mug over to her charge. “So, as you won’t be able to take up physical training in the next days, I will teach you things you must know of our culture and our language of course” Anya addressed Marie, when the girl had started to nibble on a piece of meat. Her voice had been calm but stern and Marie immediately looked at her, curiosity replacing her fear quickly. “Learning trigedasleng is of utmost importance to you now. Not all of us can speak gonasleng or English as you call it. Only warriors learn both languages and you will need to be able to communicate with everyone. I will not always be there to translate for you” Anya explained to the girl in an even tone and her brown eyes had gotten harder again.

Marie was listening closely to Anya’s every word. She was not feeling particularly hungry, in the contrary she felt rather queasy right now. But the prospect of learning more about the culture of the survivors on earth and their language, kept her silent. She doubted that Anya would care for interruptions, so Marie settled down more carefully and listened intently to the woman’s words.

“There are twelve clans united in the coalition. You are part of Trikru from now on. Trikru has always had ties with the Boat People, Broadleaf and the Glowing Forest.  Then there are the Plain Riders, Delphi, Shallow Valley and the Lake people. These clans had already formed ties with each other, before the coalition came into existence. Blue Cliff, Rock Line and Desert Clan were more resistant to the idea of the coalition and will probably falter first if there is an unrest” Anya continued her introduction and stopped for a moment, wanting to see if the girl was truly listening.

Marie had tried to keep count in her head, feeling slightly overwhelmed with all the unfamiliar names. “Didn’t you say there are twelve clans? I only counted eleven” she commented with a frown of utter concentration.

Anya nodded approvingly, her eyes flashing softer for the fraction of a second, noting with satisfaction that the girl had obviously listened closely “Yes, the last clan is Ice Nation. We have been at war with Ice Nation for the longest time. They live in the north and are used to ice and snow. They are one of the hugest clans and only joined the coalition faced with the other eleven clans united against them.”

Marie nodded in understanding at the added information. Internally, her mind halted at the mention of ice and snow, she had always wondered what snow would truly look like.

“All the clans have slightly different customs. So, you will of course first need to learn Trikru’s customs. As you have already seen, we do live in the woods and our greatest enemy now is the Mountain” Anya continued her explanations.

“You asked me, if I was from the Mountain” Marie remarked interrupting Anya again.

“I did. The Mountain has plagued our lands, almost since the old world ended. The people living inside the Mountain wield guns and turn our brothers and sisters into monsters. Whoever goes into the Mountain, never returns again” Anya explained to Marie with a serious expression on her face and darkness in her brown eyes.

Marie shuddered involuntary. And this was the place the chancellor had wanted the 100 to go and seek help? “They turn men into monsters?” she asked with a disbelieving expression, wondering how this was possible and how the monsters might look like.

“Pray that you will never be faced with a Reaper, Marie” Anya spoke in a harsh tone, brown eyes hard “The Reapers live in the tunnels of the Mountain, if they come out, they abduct everyone they encounter. They are unnaturally strong and are hard to kill. Reapers do not recognize their kin any longer, they are soulless monsters.”

As Anya saw Marie’s shivering, the woman started to doubt that telling the girl about the Mountain and the Reapers now had been the best timing. “That is one of the reasons, you should never venture through the woods near the Mountain on your own” Anya finished the information about the Mountain with a serious expression and in a strict tone. It could safe the girl’s life one day, if she heeded that advice.

Marie nodded immediately and hoped she would really never meet a Reaper in person.

“So, now let’s start with the basics of trigedasleng” Anya instructed, diverting the child’s attention from the Mountain.

The next few hours, Marie learned how to properly introduce herself in the new language, the proper way to address others, to count, basic commands in combat, directions and other essential stuff. At the end of the lesson, Marie’s head was swimming with all the new information and she was sure she would forget most of it anyway again. She was starting to develop a headache and rubbed at her temples tiredly, her coughing had worsened as well in the last few minutes. She wished to have a notebook at hand, to write down all the words, she could feel them mixing in her head already.

“That should suffice for today” Anya closed the lesson with a nod. She had seen the girl getting more and more unfocused as the lesson continued on and she knew that her charge would not have memorized everything she had just been told. Anya gathered the plate and mug and stood up quickly. “Lie down and rest” the woman ordered sharply and opened the tent flap without looking back.

Marie could see, that it had already started to darken outside and she was actually relieved now to be able to rest. She did not think, she could concentrate on anything more this evening, her mind felt too sluggish to attempt.

When Anya returned sometime later, her young charge had already fallen asleep and Anya silently settled in her own furs for the night, trying not to wake her again.

 

 

 

Chapter 16

On the following morning, the messengers which had been sent out to raise an army returned with the first warriors in tow and TonDC was quickly filled with a variety of new tents.

Anya had taken Marie with her to the training pit, to watch Tris’ training. Marie tried to keep her attention on the training combat between Anya and Tris, watching both of them fight clearly showed her, just how bad she was at it. Anya and Tris circled each other gracefully, as if they were doing a deathly dance. Tris did not seem to hold much of a chance at fighting against Anya yet and Marie glumly mussed, that she would never even reach Tris’ level. Her focus strayed ever so often to the newly arrived warriors instead.

The later it got in the day, more and more warriors kept arriving in TonDC non-stop. Sometimes only one or two at time, other times a larger group arrived together. Marie watched as more tents were erected on all the available places all around TonDC. She also saw Lexa and Indra welcoming all of the arriving warriors and personally instructing them where their tents should be erected.

Some of the warriors also came to the training pits and most of the strangers eyed Marie silently. All of them had heard word about the Sky girl, that had been allowed to stay in TonDC and all of them were curios to get a glimpse of the girl for themselves.

Anya noticed Marie’s attention straying every so often and finally had enough of her lack of attention. She stepped up to the girl almost silently and snapped her fingers directly in front of the girl’s face abruptly.

Marie startled with a loud gasp, jumping in place slightly and looked at Anya shamefaced. “Sorry” the girl mumbled almost inaudibly, averting her eyes to the ground at her feet.

Anya pursed her lips with a glare at the girl. Marie obviously did not understand yet, just how much watching a fight could teach her, but she would teach her its importance quickly. She sent Tris to join a departing hunting party and directed Marie to follow her. She mutely led her charge to an edge of TonDC, where stacks of wood were stored.

“Take some logs and stock them for a fire” Anya demanded from Marie in a sharp tone and sat down cross-legged on the soft grass, leaving enough room for the girl.

Marie blinked at the woman helplessly for a moment and when Anya did not say anything else, but began to glare at her, the girl straightened her shoulders and started with taking some logs. She tried to pile them together logically and looked back to Anya expectantly.

The woman just observed Marie with a bored expression, that did not give any indication if the girl was doing well or failing miserably.  “Light it” Anya ordered sharply at last with a hint of impatience in her voice, convinced that Marie had had more than enough time to prepare a suitable stack. She knew that she would have already have a burning fire at hand, if she had prepared it herself.

Marie bit her lip with a doubtful expression and stood in front of her pile of logs with no real idea how to accomplish her task. They had only once spoken the theory through of how to light a fire without any aid in her earth class. She tried to remember fervently what the teacher had said, but her mind remained blank.

“You told me, you were taught how to light a fire” Anya reminded the girl with impatience now clear in her voice as her eyes narrowed at Marie.

“Yeah, but with a lighter or some matches” Marie shrugged helplessly still biting at her lips, she tried not to squirm under Anya’s hard stare, but could feel herself failing miserably at it.

Anya stood up with a loud huff and her voice got colder “So, you don’t know how to light a fire at all?”

Marie nodded with a miserable expression, looking on the ground ashamedly.

“And how do you expect to survive a night in the cold or to cook your prey?” Anya lectured the girl sternly in a harsh tone, glaring down at the child impatiently.

Marie just shrugged again and kept her gaze locked on the grass at her feet, only feeling the weight of Anya’s gaze burning down on her neck.

Anya shook her head at the girl with an annoyed expression, her impatience rising at her clear inaptitude and checked the pile of logs the girl had put together critically. “Even if you could light it, this pile would never burn like that. You piled it completely the wrong way” Anya commented with the previous impatience, now turned into full annoyance in her voice.

Marie looked at her with her big grey innocent eyes and the woman huffed again.

Anya collected some smaller twigs and knocked Marie’s pile over completely with another impatient huff. “Come here and watch” Anya ordered her young charge sharply, looking up minutely at her and showed the girl how to pile the logs with smaller twigs in between, so that everything would burn evenly.

As Marie intently watched Anya lighting the fire with her bare hands, a figure suddenly approached them from the treeline.

Anya’s eyes snapped up to the approaching figure and she had a dagger in hand in a heartbeat, only relaxing her stance, when she recognized the figure as Lincoln. They spoke quickly in trigedasleng, much too quickly for Marie to be able to understand anything, even though she did recognize a word here and there.

Anya seemed rather upset about what Lincoln had told her, her eyes had gotten hard and unyielding and her jaw tightened and to Marie it seemed as if Lincoln was pleading for something from Anya. They seemed to have reached a consensus some time later as they nodded to each other and Lincoln disappeared into the woods again.

Anya turned to Marie with a guarded expression and her voice was impatient and harsh “Come. I need to leave for some time now. I don’t want you alone in the village right now.”

Marie blinked at Anya, confused because of the shift of Anya’s mood and followed the woman mutely. The question to ask what was going on burned on Marie’s tongue, but she thought it better to remain silent for now and not to annoy Anya even more, the woman’s mood seemed explosive enough. Marie had to hurry, to keep up to Anya’s quick pace and followed the woman through the village mutely. Anya had searched for Lexa and exchanged some words with the commander, too quick and low for Marie to hear anything.  “You will stay with the commander for now” Anya told Marie sharply and left on the spot, without looking back. Marie barely had time to blink, before the woman was gone from her sight.

“Is something wrong?” Marie asked the commander hesitantly, confused by the woman’s quick leave. She had seen the tension in Anya’s body and internally hoped that nothing bad had happened.

Lexa shook her head in the negative with a neutral expression “Nothing to concern yourself with”. She watched the young girl shortly, it was obvious that the girl was nervous in her company, but she was sure that the girl would get used to her soon enough. “Alira is sleeping so you will have to stick to me for the moment” the commander told the girl after a short moment of silence. She had contemplated to have the handmaid woken again, Alira would surely not complain, but Lexa dismissed the idea quickly. Being seen with Marie at her side in TonDC would clearly send the message of her trust in the girl to the newly arrived warriors and she could understand why her former mentor had not wished to leave the girl unattended.

Marie shrugged and as she did not want to be a bother to the commander she suggested “I can just go to the tent if that’s better?” her voice was slightly hesitant and a frown settled on her features. The prospect of being alone for an unknown time, did not sound appealing at all and she had no idea where Tris might be. She thought to have seen the older girl leave TonDC with a group of hunters after she had trained with Anya.

Lexa shook her head again in rejection of the girl’s suggestion “No, tensions are running high right now among the troops. It is better, if you stay here now. Most of the warriors have already settled, that were expected to arrive today. How about I show you how to ride, now that you are better?”

Marie was enthusiastic about the idea right away, just like Lexa had hoped to divert her attention. Anya had told her, that she was going to speak to the leader of Skykru now and they both agreed that they did not want the girl to get involved there. The child’s grey eyes had stayed on the spot where Anya had left and she thought that the girl could do with something to occupy herself with until her general returned.

The horse, Marie had been caressing the day before recognized her immediately, neighed at the girl and came to the fence to be caressed again. It was one of the commander’s personal war horses and even the most experienced groom was wary of the creature.

Marie smiled at the black horse and climbed onto the fence to have a higher perch. The mare butted against her outstretched hand and Marie happily felt the soft skin of its nose. Marie diverted her smile to Lexa standing next to her a moment later “Does it have a name, commander?” she asked in a chirpy tone.

Lexa nodded “She is named sontam, which translated to …”

Marie interrupted her boldly with a proud glimmer to her grey eyes “Summer, Anya has started to teach me basic things in your language.”

The commander nodded with a small smile ghosting around the corners of her lips at the girl’s obvious eagerness to impress her “You are learning quickly then” she commented in a kind tone, while Gustus, who was shadowing the commander as always, glared at the girl for her insolence.

Marie shrugged as she did not have any comparison, she could not judge that. She was fascinated with the new language. It was sometimes similar to English, but completely different in other ways, where she thought the harsher pronunciation would be the hardest for her to master.

A grounder who was working as a groom in TonDC came up to them, carrying brushes and horse tack.

Marie observed how the commander only nodded in acknowledgement, but did not actually thank the man, but she waited until the grounder had left them again to voice her question. “Don’t all of you say thank you? Or just because your commander?” Marie asked with curiosity written clearly on her face. She remembered that Anya already had told her something similar, but the concept still seemed so alien to her, that she wanted more confirmation.

“It is the groom’s duty to fulfil these tasks. You would not thank him for doing his duty” Lexa explained with a mild glimmer in her green eyes. The commander was pleased to note, that the girl seemed to be genuinely trying to adapt to their culture. “But as commander they are all my subjects, so I do not have to explicitly thank any of them” she added after a beat of silence. She doubted that the girl would understand their political system yet.

Marie looked at the young woman with slightly wide eyes. She was still new to this hierarchy and on the Ark, there was also one leader namely the chancellor, but the chancellor clearly was not as powerful as the commander seemed to be to the grounders. The girl was rather fascinated by this position and compared it to a kind of queen in her head. She also could not remember the people of the Ark ever showing the same amount of respect to the chancellor, as the grounders were freely offering to their commander.

Lexa presented Marie with one of the brushes and climbed through the fence.

“Heda, you should not…” Gustus started to interfere with a disapproving grimace, wanting to offer to prepare the horses himself instead.

Lexa simple shushed her personal guard with a gesture, motioning the burly man to stay put behind the fence and encouraged the girl to follow her. She was fairly certain that Gustus’ company was probably unsettling the girl further.

Marie looked at the brush in her hand rather doubtfully “I thought you wanted to show me how to ride” a hint of displeasure appeared in her tone.

Lexa had to chuckle at the girl’s disdainful expression “Grooming the horses is part of riding them. You have to take care of the horses that carries you. Just like you have to sharpen your blades before and after a battle to keep them in pristine condition.”

Marie nodded with a slight pout, but understood the logic behind the woman’s word and followed the commander to the other side of the fence quickly, smiling at the dark horse and caressing its nose shortly again.

Lexa showed the girl how to correctly handle the brush and together they brushed the black mare for a few minutes, while the horse seemed to enjoy the attention it was getting just fine.

Gustus was glaring at Marie non-stop and Marie felt the hairs on the back of her neck rise and looked over to the bulky grounder every few seconds, unnerved by his continuous stare. When she stood directly next to the commander, so that she hoped the man would be unable to hear her words, the girl asked in a low whisper “Why is he glaring at me all the time?” peering over her shoulder at him again.

Lexa could not stop a slight laugh escaping her lips now, but she also whispered back her answer to the child with a slightly amused glint in her green eyes “Gustus thinks it is unbecoming for Heda to brush a horse.”

“Oh” the girl said as realization clicked in her mind and she looked at Lexa clearly unsure now.

Lexa just gave her a mild smile, picking up on the girl’s uncertainty instantly and tried to sooth her “Don’t mind him.”

Marie nodded, but could not get rid of the weird sensation of being watched.

When they finally finished brushing down the horse, Lexa showed the girl how to correctly saddle the horse. Marie wanted to try it herself, but she was too short and could not lift the saddle high enough to get it over the horses back. She was surprised by how heavy the saddle was as well.

After that the commander crouched down next to the horse and offered the girl her hands to boost her onto the back of the huge creature. The girl would definitely not be able to get up on her own without the aid.

But Marie blinked at the woman totally confused and had no idea what to do, looking at the commander with her head tilted to the side in concentration.

After Lexa had explained it to the girl, Marie started on her first try with the wrong foot and the commander corrected her again with a gentle tone. With Lexa’s help the girl finally sat on top of the horse and now looked utterly bewildered.

Marie clung to the saddle strongly and her heart was beating way to fast.

The horse picked up on the girl’s discomfort and whinnied at her, cocking its head back in aggitation. Marie only clung harder to the saddle and looked at Lexa with pleading eye “I want to get down, now!” her voice had gotten higher, more a screech now.

Lexa shook her head with twinkling eyes and squeezed one of the girl’s legs reassuringly “Deep breaths. You won’t fall of and if you do, I will catch you” she promised the child.

Marie tried to control her panic and closed her eyes and also gripped the commander’s hand on her leg for a bit of more comfort.

After a few minutes, the girl finally relaxed on the horses back and let go of the commander’s hand again. Lexa had not even batted an eye, also the girl’s grip had been slightly painful.

Marie saw the commander taking the reins of the horse and the woman led the horse over the meadow slowly. Marie needed a few moments to get used to the sensation of the moving animal under her. When she realized that she would not fall off directly, even though it was awfully high, she even started to enjoy the movements.

After a few rounds of slow walking, the commander deemed the girl steady enough and urged her horse into a faster tempo and the girl started to let out squeals of joy. Lexa watched on as her horse trotted around the meadow and was slightly impressed how well the girl was faring for her first ride alone on a horse.

Marie thought it felt absolutely amazing, when the horse picked up speed. Going with the movements of the horse almost felt strangely natural to her and she did not mind the height any more after all. Her fun was abruptly cut short, when there was a loud commotion in TonDC. Lexa called her horse to her with a whistle and quickly helped the girl down from it.

Marie had to be steadied by the commander for a moment, as her legs felt rather funny. The already setting sun showed her, that she had been way longer on that horse then she had thought.

“You will learn another time what to do after a ride” Lexa told the girl in a calm tone and directed her to follow her in the direction of the commotion, wanting to see what was going on.

Marie nearly had to run to keep up with the woman’s fast purposeful strides to TonDC. First, she smiled when she saw that Anya was in the centre of the commotion. But soon her smile fell, when she saw the body of a warrior on the ground next to Anya. Marie turned to the commander with a confused expression.

The grounders around them were mostly muttering to themselves or demanding something for which Marie’s knowledge of the language was not sufficient to understand. What she did understand made her heart sink, the other delinquents had killed another grounder.

 

 

Chapter 17

Marie indecisively stood in the middle of the commotion of the grounders in TonDC slightly behind Lexa, grey eyes wide and feeling her body tense in anticipation. It was painfully obvious just how angry all the gathered warriors were and to her internal horror their anger seemed to direct itself against her own person now. She could not take her eyes off of the body of a dead grounder lying at Anya’s feet and she heard that another one was obviously waiting in Nyko’s hut for the healer’s attention, wounded severely by a gun, but still alive at the moment.

The warriors around her were all shouting loudly at once, some had even drawn their weapons and were demanding retribution from the commander for the harm the Sky children had caused them yet again at once, or at least Marie thought they were, as they were using their native tongue. One of the warriors, who had only arrived at TonDC in the morning, suddenly shoved her from behind harshly and Marie fell to her knees promptly at the unexpected push. She looped up at the man with wide grey eyes and tried to scramble away from him, noticing the sword in his hand, but he held onto the material of her shirt and sneered into her face hatefully “Let us start with this one!”

To Marie’s utter horror, the man’s loud proclamation was met with cheers from quiet a lot of the warriors standing around them in a tight circle. Her grey eyes found Anya standing on the other side of the crowd, brown eyes narrowed in obvious anger and her own sword drawn. For the fraction of a second, Marie feared that the woman would not try to protect her, but rather assist the man in beheading her. But before Anya could reach her, Gustus, who had stood directly behind the commander, had stepped in suddenly and pushed the man to his knees in front of the commander, the commander glaring the warrior down, while Anya helped Marie up again from the ground.

Marie shrank into Anya’s side trying to disappear behind her, she noted how a deathly silence had suddenly fallen around them and it seemed as if the warriors were holding their breaths. The people were extremely angry right now and she was sure they would kill her before marching on the other delinquents. She felt one of Anya’s arms curl protectively around her back and she was pushed even firmer into the woman’s body, while the woman’s other hand held up a dagger in a threating gesture, brown eyes narrowed still into angry slits. Although she could still feel and see the other warriors glaring at her with hate and scorn twisting their features, Marie felt incredibly safer, protected by Anya like this, sure that the woman would not let anyone touch her.

The commander ended the commotion with some quickly barked orders in trigedasleng. Marie only caught some words from the orders, the commander’s words had been delivered through clenched teeth and much too quickly for her to understand. If she had understood her correctly, there would be an attack soon on the other delinquents, but it would not happen tonight.

The warrior who had pushed Marie down, was dragged away by two other warriors. Marie watched them go away and wondered what was to happen to him. By attacking her so openly, the warrior had obviously defied the commander’s order, that she was to stay and be treated as one of their own. Marie had no idea what the consequences were for defying a direct order in such a fashion though, but she guessed that she would find out soon enough. She frowned slightly, noticing just now that she had completely forgotten about Lexa’s orders to keep her protected.

Marie was pulled along by Anya only a moment later, stopping her internal mussing and she stumbled behind the woman silently, her body felt strangely sluggish and she still felt her heart hammering against her chest and she felt her hands shaking slightly. Anya directed them both to the healer’s hut with quick strides, holding a hand onto one of her charge’s shoulder. The girl still looked spooked and startled and Anya feared that the child may pass out suddenly, when the shock left her system.

When they entered, Marie could immediately spot a man lying on the cot, she had occupied the day before. The man’s face was covered in some paint, obscuring his features from view, although it had become visibly smudged in some places and he wore armour, that would blend in perfectly with the foliage of the trees, making it impossibly hard to spot him hidden in a tree. Blood was visibly pouring from a wound in the man’s thigh and a small puddle of it had already gathered beneath the cot. The wound seemed rather small and there was no arrow sticking out of it, so Marie assumed a bullet was wedged into warrior’s leg. The arrows she had seen so far, had all looked to be crafted out of wood and had been much thicker, sometimes completed with a rather bulky tip and she guessed that wounds caused by this kind of arrows had to look different.

Anya directed her to sit on the other cot of the room and told her to wait. Marie obliged without a word, suddenly glad to be able to sit down, feeling slightly woozy and cold, but her eyes were glued to the bleeding wound of the warrior and she was not able to divert her gaze. Nyko was still nowhere to be found and it seemed apart from the woman who had taken care of her, when she had fallen ill no one in the village seemed to master any healing skills.

Marie watched as Anya left the hut again and all she could do was wait for her return. She mutely wondered where the woman had gone, but she would not be foolish enough to try and follow her. She was not dumb and knew that only the commander's protection had saved her before, but she was unsure if some of the warriors would not try to attack nevertheless, if they encountered her alone and defenceless and she was sure it was better not to test her luck like that. Another thought invaded her mind, most of the survivors she had met so far seemed to possess combat skills, Anya had even told her that all of their children learned basic fighting techniques, no matter what they planned to learn later. It seemed rather impractical, that they were not taught healing skills as well as she thought it likely that warriors would often suffer from injuries. She had seen a lot of scars on Anya’s upper body already, so she thought that her assumption was well founded.

The warrior had barely acknowledged their presence in the hut. His dark eyes were glazed with pain and he seemed on the verge of losing consciousness and what Marie could see of his skin through the armour and the face paint looked alarmingly pale. Her gaze stayed transfixed on the blood slowly dripping from his wound to the ground beneath him and wondered why no one had at least bandaged the area to slow the bleeding. Marie did not have any real knowledge of healing, but she had seen Clarke patching up Jasper. She hoped someone would come and patch this warrior up soon as well or the man would probably bleed out. She knew that the bullet would have to be removed from his thigh as well or an infection would set in killing the warrior for sure. When it did not seem as if someone would return soon, she stood up again on shaky legs and took up what appeared to be a bandage of some sort. Slowly, a little afraid that the warrior might attack her, she stepped closer and pressed the bandage to his wound, her grey eyes flitting back and forth between his wound and his face. The man let out a slight pained groan at the contact, but he did not try to remove her hands from his body as well, so Marie remained standing beside him, trying to slow the bleeding by putting pressure on it. She grimaced slightly, worry rising in her mind, when she felt the bandage slowly getting moist against her fingers.

Anya returned sometime later with the commander and Alira in tow. The older handmaiden quickly kneeled next to the wounded warrior, ordering Marie to step back and assessed the wound through the hole in the armour. The woman felt the warrior’s forehead and her hand came back sweaty.

“I will try my best, Heda” Alira said, but to Marie it seemed as if the woman was already convinced, that she would not be able to save the man’s life.

Marie stepped back over to the other got, trying to ignore the feeling of the man’s blood against her fingers and watched on silently as the armour was cut from the wounded leg and the woman tried to extract the bullet from the leg.

Anya frowned slightly at her charge, positively surprised that the child had tried to save the warrior in their absence. Her attention was called back to the warrior, when he screamed loudly as Alira started to search for the bullet in his flesh.

The man finally had to be held down by two other warriors who had stood outside the hut. Alira did not want to give the man herbs for the pain as she feared if the man felt asleep he would never wake again.

Marie shuddered with every pained scream torn from the warrior’s throat. She observed alarmed how much blood the warrior was losing in the time it took Alira, to dig the small bullet out of the man’s flesh. The side of the cot was completely soaked red with fresh blood and some was gathering in a small pool on the floor of the hut. She startled strongly when she suddenly felt Anya’s steadying hand on her shoulder and the woman’s strong presence beside her all the time. If she wanted to become a warrior, she guessed she should get used to the sight of bloody wounds and dying warriors rather sooner than later. Fighting a battle with swords and bows was prone to be bloody after all. Still, her stomach felt rather queasy and she wished she could ease the man’s suffering somehow and get rid of his dried blood straining her fingers a rusty red.

When Alira finally succeeded and held the bloody bullet in her fingers, the others in the hut eyed the bullet warily. Bullets were associated with the Mountain Man’s weapons and the grounders had learnt that fighting with a sword against such a weapon was a fight easily lost. That the sky children now were armed with more of the same weapons, made them a more dangerous opponent and they would have to be dealt with quickly before they could side themselves with the Mountain Men. The bullet dug out of the wound was proof, that the sky children had found more guns. Anya and Lexa believed Marie’s word that only one pistol had been in their possession previously. As grounders did not touch any guns it was possible, that there had been some left in old bunkers or other uninhabited structures.

Lexa felt irritation rise in her mind at the prospect if sending her warriors into a battle against an opponent armed with guns. She could only hope that the Sky children were mostly as inexperienced in war fare, as Marie was, or they would suffer severe losses.

Marie had not taken her eyes from the wounded warrior and saw him loose consciousness. “Anya” she touched the woman’s side hesitantly to alert her mentor to the changed condition of the warrior. Marie was unable to see if the warrior’s chest was still rising and falling or if he had stopped breathing all together.

Anya and Lexa simultaneously focused on the wounded warrior’s face again, their eyes leaving the bloody bullet.

Marie saw Alira bent over the man’s body in front of his face. She thought the woman might be listening for breathing, but the man’s chest seemed to have stopped all movements.

With a grim expression the woman looked at the commander and shook her head silently. The gesture confirmed Marie’s observation, the warrior had died probably due to the high blood loss he had suffered.

Marie had never before watched a human being die before. Sure, she had seen the floating of her father but he had still been breathing as his body had been flung from the Ark.

The grim expression of Alira’s face was mirrored by all the others present in the healers hut. It took only a few moments, before the others sprung into action again but to Marie the seconds felt like a whole eternity.

The commander gave orders to Alira and the two other warriors who had held their now dead comrade down before. Marie could not hear the words against the loud ringing sound in her ears. She watched on totally catatonic as Alira started to strip the man’s body. His face and body were washed clean of all the spilled blood and the smudged face paint. Anya gave one final squeeze to Marie’s shoulder and left the girl’s side to take on the task of cleaning the armour of the fallen warrior.

Marie had not noticed, when Lexa and the two other warriors had left, but when her focus returned a bit later, she saw that Anya was still cleaning the armour and Alira was now re-applying the face paint to the dead man with a thin brush.

Anya had watched her charge from time to time, spotting the signs of shock setting in. She had thought it better to let the girl snap out of it on her own. When Marie’s grey eyes finally regained some focus and the girl became aware of her surroundings again, Anya had just finished with the last piece of armour.

Marie saw Anya putting down the last piece of armour and looking at her with a serious expression and she looked back at the woman with wide expectant eyes.

“The pyres will be lit tomorrow at sun down” Anya told Marie and ordered the girl to follow her out of the healer’s hut. The girl stood from the cot, on visibly wobbly legs, scratching lightly at her hands and Anya stayed close to her, in case the child would suddenly collapse. She could only try to imagine, how this days event would affect her charge.

Marie noticed, that night was already starting to fall around the camp, when they stepped out. In a slight distance, Marie could see someone sneaking through the camp and she exerted her eyes to get a closer look. She thought, that the figure seemed familiar to her.

“John?” Marie exclaimed disbelievingly, when it clicked in her mind. As the girl started to take steps into the boy’s direction and opened her mouth, probably to shout at him, Anya put one hand over her mouth and slung her other arm around the smaller body pulling her back behind a tent and ducking out of the way.

“No, Marie” Anya lowly hissed at the girl in a firm voice, not taking her hand from her mouth just yet “His fate is not your fate.”

Marie looked Anya with a questioning gaze, not understanding the meaning behind the words, but she accepted them nevertheless and did not struggle against the woman’s hold on her body. She did trust Anya after all. She had just not known for sure that John had still been in TonDC until now.

They both watched silently as the boy snuck out of TonDC, but Marie saw that the guards on duty had turned away from him, as if they wanted to give him a clear path. A few moments after the boy was out of sight and his footsteps had faded into the woods surrounding TonDC, Anya slackened her hold on Marie and stood up again, leading the girl back to their tent.

The guards returned to their normal positions as well and Marie watched all of the proceedings with confusion evident on her face.

Anya led her through the village with quick purposeful strides, hoping that the girl would contain the curiosity and puzzlement burning in her grey eyes. The village was oddly silent at the moment as the inhabitants were mourning the loss of two more lives.

Marie followed Anya silently, but she still kept a questioning gaze on Anya when they had entered their tent.

Anya huffed when the girl kept her under a piercing gaze and crouched down next to her directing the girl to sit on her furs.

“Why have all the guards let John flee?” Marie asked immediately, barely a moment later with confusion colouring her words.

“He was set free deliberately, Marie” Anya explained and after a short moment of silent contemplation on how much to tell her charge, she decided to be truthful with her “He has been infected with an illness that will weaken the Skykru before the attack.”

Marie nodded cautiously feeling sick again “You are making them sick on purpose?”

Anya nodded again “Biological war fare. It is simple, but effective. You have not been exposed to the illness, so you would have caught it with contact to the boy. I did not think we would run into him as I thought he had been let go already.”

Marie bit her lips silent in thought for long moments, a conflict visible on her features as she asked with a quivering tone “You are going to kill the other 100, aren’t you?”

A nod of confirmation was her only answer from Anya for now, before the woman squeezed her shoulder “You are not part of them anymore. Do not concern yourself with their fate, they brought it onto themselves.”

“When will you attack?” Marie voiced her question almost too low to hear.

“In a day or two. The illness needs some time to spread and thin out their numbers” Anya explained almost emotionless.

With a sinking feeling in her stomach Marie registered Anya’s words. In two days at most the other delinquents would be killed for good. She was utterly confused and overwhelmed with what to feel. She had been horrified to hear they had burned down a village and how Lincoln had been tortured by their hands and now the two warrior’s deaths had been added to the list, but knowing they would all be killed left a sour taste in her mouth.

When Marie opened and closed her mouth a few times without uttering an actual word and tears gathered in her grey eyes again, Anya moved and pulled the girl into an embrace.

She felt the girl’s smaller body shudder against her own with the force of her tears and she whispered soothing non-sense words to Marie to calm her a bit. Anya understood how hard the situation must be on the girl. She let the girl cry herself to sleep in her embrace and cautiously lowered the girl onto her furs and covered her, sweeping some stray hair out of her face gently. With that she left the girl asleep, safely tucked under her furs.

 

 

 

Chapter 18

The night had been exhausting for Marie and Anya likewise. The girl had woken several times through the night screaming from new nightmares. Anya had tried to ignore the girl at first, hoping that she would quiet down on her own, but after being woken up a second time, she abandoned that approach, choosing to actively try and sooth the girl, waking her up first and trying to wait with her until she fell back asleep. In the end and only a few hours before the sun would rise again, Anya had let the girl share her furs again. The child had been inconsolable and Anya knew that neither of them would get any more sleep, if she simply ignored her, so letting Marie join her under her own furs to get her to fall asleep once more at all had been the only viable option. But despite Anya’s reassuring body beside her, Marie still could not flee from the nightmares for too long.

Vision of the Trikru army slaughtered by the other delinquents and their guns; and Anya, Tris and Lexa bleeding out from bullet wounds with Marie standing beside them helplessly, a gun hanging limply in her hand, made her wake up screaming again and again.

All Anya could do to help her young charge was, to wake the girl again, stopping the nightmare and soothing her back to sleep, encased in her arms, whispering reassurances into her ears, until the girl’s body grew limp with sleep.

When the morning eventually came, they were both still tired.

Anya dearly hoped her young charge would learn quickly, how to cope with the life of a warrior or sleep would be evading their tent for months to come. She felt slightly foolish for readily accepting the girl as her second, she had not even considered how difficult it might be for the girl to adapt mentally. She sent the girl to wash herself, taking a few moments of silence to gather herself. The night had exhausted her more, than she had anticipated.

Anya frowned behind the retreating girl, her shoulders had been visibly hunched and her whole demeanour seemed subdued. She could understand to a certain degree that the girl’s prior experiences did not match with what she was confronted with now. But something still felt off somehow, Anya thought it unlikely that seeing someone with torture wounds and seeing another warrior die, was enough to warrant nightmares of this degree. Tris and Lexa had rarely suffered from nightmares in their early time with Anya, so the woman had only seldom been required to comfort them after one.

Marie was silent and deep in thought when she washed herself in the bowl of water in the other part of the tent and dressed again. She noted proudly, that she did not need any help anymore on how to fasten all the clothing correctly. But her mood was sour and her body felt heavy with exhaustion. The prospect of having to attend a burial in the night, did nothing to lift her bleak mood in the slightest.

“How do you bury people, Anya?” Marie finally broke the silence in the tent, when she spotted Anya behind her, while she tried in vain to braid her hair again.

Anya shook her head at the girl’s unsuccessful attempt and swatted her hands away gently.  “Leave it like that. It will need a wash. We will go to the river now” she proclaimed, wanting to speak with the girl where no one would be listening to their words.

Marie nodded, but still cocked her head to Anya as the woman had not answered her original question at all.

Anya huffed, rolling her eyes at the girl’s insistence “I will tell you about the customs on the way. Let’s grab some breakfast first. You are not progressed enough to stay silent enough, that I could hunt our food on the way.” She did not voice the last part as open criticism, only stating it in a matter-of-fact tone. It was no wonder, that the girl was not able to walk silent through the woods. It did puzzle her slightly though, why a child of this age obviously lacked any experience with braiding hair. It was an almost natural skill to Trikru, children mostly learned it very early on, practising with their mothers or fathers.

Marie lightly glared at the woman in annoyance, she was easier to irritate right now with all the nightmares still fresh in her mind, but she kept her mouth shut. Anya had way more experience in the woods, so if the woman thought she would startle all the possible pray away, she was probably correct anyway. She also noted how Anya seemed slightly tired as well, although the woman’s gaze did not lack any sharpness, Marie thought that her posture looked just a tad bit languid.

Anya quickly gathered, what they would both need for a bath in the river and then shooed the girl to the communal fire to have a quick breakfast. It would not truly matter at which time they left TonDC to take a bath anyway, the heat of the summer had already faded many moons ago. She internally expected the girl to find the water freezing cold and Anya hoped she would not get sick from it again. She could have asked Lexa for the use of the commander’s bathing tube, but her charge should not get used to such luxuries, as she would not have access to them later anyway. The girl would start as a simple warrior having to work herself up the hierarchy, she already had a slight advantage as not all the youngsters were taken as seconds and being taken as a second by a general was a great honour.

Anya also had to tell her young charge something, which she feared would upset the girl even more. In the night before, another contraption had fallen from the sky. The scouts which Tris had been allowed to join in the night, had reported that no one at the crash site was alive. Their scouts had found quiet a lot of burnt people, but had not located any survivors.  Anya did not know whether the girl still had any emotional ties to inhabitants of the space ship or if with the death of her mother she had truly been on her own.

Breakfast was a quick and silent affair. Marie had picked up on Anya’s tenseness and they had seen the pyres on a free spot in the village for the evening on the way to the fire pits. The mood among the warriors and the inhabitants of TonC was rather bleak as well, so Marie had not said a single word since they left their tent.

After breakfast, Marie was led out of the village into the woods surrounding TonDC by Anya. Fortunately, her ankle had stopped hurting all together and she made progress with walking through the forest as silent as possible.  “See, I can move quietly” Marie remarked feeling uneasy with the continued silence. They had walked for several minutes already and it unnerved her that Anya still had not said a single word to her, she internally feared that the woman was annoyed with her for waking her up so often last night.

The corner of Anya’s mouth twitched upwards, when she replied in a slightly taunting voice “Still sounding like a baby pauna.”

Marie pouted, she did not know what a pauna was, but the teasing tone of Anya’s voice made the meaning of the words clearer.

“But you are improving” Anya relented with a smile ghosting on her lips seeing the girl’s pout slowly turning into a scowl.

Marie beamed proudly at Anya at her small acknowledgment and let her gaze filter over the woods around them. “How far is it to the river?” Marie asked slightly confused. She had not noticed any change in the surroundings at all yet. Anya had told her earlier that the river could be reached quickly from TonDC and they had been moving for a rather long time now. She wondered if Anya’s definition of a small distance was only differing so strongly from her own, which was entirely possible as the Ark had not offered that much space to move around.

“Not far” Anya answered observing the girl next to her more closely “Does your leg still hurt?”

Marie shook her head in the negative and wiggled the limb a little for emphasise “No, totally fine again.”

Anya inclined her head, feeling a small sliver of relief “Then we can pick up combat training later again”. Tris had been allowed to rest for a few hours after the scouting mission in the night and would be able to join their combat training later. “You should watch your surroundings more closely” Anya commented after another few minutes of silent walk. She had led them in circles for the last part and had hoped the girl would pick up on that on her own.

Marie frowned confusion colouring her voice “Why?”. She looked around herself in the woods, but could not spot anything special.

“Look around you” Anya commanded and waited for the girl to do another scan of the trees around them. She had stopped in front of a tree which had a truly unique shape and was often used as reference by the Trikru.

Marie needed a few moments to come to the right conclusion and she crossed her arms over her chest with an accusatory glare “You led us in circles. I have seen this tree at least three times before” slight exasperation flashed over her features.

Anya nodded in agreement, but her brown eyes were hard as she stared down at the girl “Then you should have spotted that three rounds ago. We have passed the tree four times now. You must always keep your eyes and ears open” she chided the girl sharply.

Marie nodded with a slight pout, but kept silent. She had not anticipated the possibility that the walk was a lesson in itself already. But she knew now that it had been foolish to expect differently, it seemed Anya was intent to use every possibility to teach her something, considering her vast ignorance that was probably a good thing, although Marie was not appreciating it at this particular moment.

Anya turned in another direction “The river flows in this direction. The walk is not long.”

Marie followed the woman and now tried to keep a closer look on the trees and listened to the sound of different animals in the woods and the wind ruffling the leaves, she was not entirely convinced that Anya would not just lead them in another circle just to test her attention and she was intent on not failing again.

“There is something you need to know” Anya started in a calm tone, watching the child from the corner of her eyes “In the night another of your ships fell from the sky.”

Marie blinked up at the woman in confusion and her brows creased. She was still waiting on what customs the Trikru had for a burial and this piece of information seemed totally out of the blue.

“Scouts have already searched the crash site. No one has survived” Anya told the girl bluntly, but keeping a close watch of her reaction.

Marie gulped harshly, but nodded mutely only a moment later. “Was it the whole Ark?” she asked in a slightly quivering tone, looking straight ahead of them and not up at Anya any longer.

Anya did not know the answer to this question. The commander was wondering the same thing and she told the girl so.

The rest of the way to the river passed in silence. Marie was lost in thought. She had not known a lot of other people on the Ark. But the possibility that they were all gone now, still felt weird somehow and Marie could not place a finger on what exactly she was feeling at all. It was nothing she could change, so Marie decided it would be better for her not to ponder on it further.

The actual sight of the river, soon caught her complete attention anyway, diverting her from her own glum thoughts. The sight was breath taking and a small waterfall was cascading into the water. The water was so clear that Marie could even see the ground of the river.

Anya had directly gone to a spot on the shore and laid out their gear. She loosened the braids from her own hair and started to shrug out of her armour. “Start undressing or do you want a bath in your clothes?” Anya asked the girl with a teasing look over her shoulder, when the girl had not moved an inch a few moments later. Anya’s upper body was already bare, except for the breast band covering her breasts when Marie unlocked her gaze from the water and stepped up next to the woman, visibly hesitating.

“You are also taking a bath?” Marie asked, feeling slightly shy to undress completely in front of her.

Anya rolled her eyes at her charge’s antics and commented lightly “You do not have anything I haven’t seen so far,” when Marie still did not move, she raised a brow at the child “are all sky people so shy about their bodies?”

Marie blinked at her and bit her lip, expression indecisive “I don’t know.”

Anya huffed at the girl, who still had to start undressing “Being naked is nothing to be shy about” she exclaimed and a little impatience creeped into her tone.

Marie nodded and when she still failed to undress Anya threatened “If you don’t undress right now, I will throw you into the water like that and you will walk back in the same clothes.” She gulped at the woman, but she did not doubt the woman’s words for a second as Anya had delivered her threat in a sharp tone, lacking any kind of playfulness and she hastily began to undress. She placed her clothes next to Anya’s on the ground and when she looked up, she saw that Anya had already gone into the river. The woman was swimming through the water with practised movements.

Marie eyed the water uncertainly, it was obviously deeper than she had previously thought. She had no idea how to swim and although it did not look particular difficult, Marie was hesitant to try it out, she knew that people could drown and she had heard Octavia telling the others about the water snake which had bitten her.

“Come on in,” Anya summoned the girl loudly and she came back to the shallower part of the river “there are no creatures in this part of the river” she tried to reassure the girl in a calmer tone, recognizing the signs of fear on her young face.

Marie tested the water with her toes at first and quickly took a step back a frown on her face. “It is so cold” she complained loudly to Anya in a slightly whiny voice, taking another step back.

Anya huffed in annoyance and stepped out of the water “You get used to the temperature quickly and it is either the cold water or staying dirty and I will not share a tent with you, when you begin to smell.”

Marie eyed the water warily. It was cold and it was deep. Before she had the chance, to make a decision to try to get used to the temperature slowly, Anya had circled around her without her noticing and quickly thrown her into the deeper water.

Marie resurfaced to the surface a moment later, gulping for air and her arms flailing through the water panicky, trying to find something to hold onto, not feeling any ground beneath her feet.

Anya rolled her eyes at Marie’s overly dramatic reaction and after gathering the soap she joined the girl back into the water.

Marie had managed to stay above the surface somehow, but was still flailing around completely uncoordinated and panic was painted onto her features.

Anya snaked an arm around the girl’s body from behind, taking a little pity in the child “Calm down, you won’t drown.”

Marie looked at her with wide eyes “I don’t know how to swim” exclaimed, her hands almost clawing at Anya’s skin, afraid the woman would let go immediately.

Anya nodded and answered in a dry tone “That much was obvious. It is too cold to stay in the water long. You will learn how to swim in the next warm season.” She manoeuvred both of them into a shallower part of the river, where the girl would be able to stand and pried her fingers from her own skin, setting her back to her feet.

They both washed up in a hurried silence. The longer Marie stayed in the water, the colder it felt to her. Her teeth had started to chatter strongly because of the cold, when they finally went back onto the shore together.

Marie was handed a towel from the woman and they both dried up quickly. Anya had brought another set of clothes for both of them and after dressing, she motioned Marie to turn around and she braided the girl’s still damp hair away from her face and also braided her own hair in her usual style.

“How late do you think it is right now?” Anya asked the girl, bending down to pack their things together.

Marie looked up at the position of the sun “Around midday I guess” she mused with a slight crease to her brow.

“Correct” Anya nodded with a satisfied expression “So, you remember some of the lessons already.” Marie beamed up at her with a slight smile, but it dimed noticeably when she inquired about the reasons for the girl’s arrestment on the Ark. She listened on with a deepening frown to the girl’s tale; obviously the child had been arrested nearly a year ago and had been kept in almost complete isolation until having been sent to the ground. To Anya it sounded unbelievably harsh to subject a child this young for such a crime to such an extreme form of punishment, but it explained to a certain degree why the girl seemed so desperate to garner her trust, probably completely deprived of human comfort by now. On the way back to TonDC, Anya repeated some of the lectures in Trigedasleng they had had the previous days, trying to divert the girl’s attention again.

When they reached the tree line around TonDC, Tris was already waiting for their return on the outskirt of TonDC. The girl smiled kindly at Marie, not having seen her for a few days now “You look healthier again” she commented with obvious relief.

Marie nodded and reciprocated the other girl’s smile with an honest one of her own. She was only coughing seldom today and felt better except for the tiredness.

Their training session was exhausting. Marie was sure, a variety of new bruises would bloom over her body tomorrow from the many times Tris and Anya had sieged her today. She was relieved, when she was allowed to move from the training pit and only had to watch Anya and Tris spar against each other.

Anya had been pleased to note that Marie’s stamina and technique were improving. The improvements were small and slow but she was improving.

Marie observed them silently, keeping a close watch on both of their movements. Tris even managed to siege Anya once and the girl was beaming a great smile.

Anya nodded, with a pleased expression at the girl “You did well, Tris. You will be allowed to join the battle against the sky children.”

Marie blinked at the woman in astonishment, feeling her words like a physical punch. Through the day, she had somewhat even forgotten the other delinquents for some time.

Tris glowed with pride at the news and directly stormed away to tell one of her friends in TonDC of the news.

“Will I be fighting as well?” Marie voiced the loudest of her thoughts in a shaky voice.

Anya shook her head resolutely, brows creased into a deep frown “You still have to learn a lot, before you will be able to face a real battle.”

Marie nodded, unsure if she should feel relieved or not. She knew, that as a warrior she would have to fight someday. But she did not know if she would be able to fight against the other delinquents at all. Did warriors have to face their friends or even their families in battles? Marie finally voiced her thoughts to Anya worriedly.

Anya regarded the young girl next to her thoughtfully for a moment. Trikru children grew up with war surrounding them. They would never think to ask such a question at all. “We fight whomever we have to fight, if we are ordered to by Heda” Anya told her in a serious voice.

Marie nodded, mulling over the new information silently in her head “Would I have to fight the other 100 if my training was not lacking so much?”

Anya pursued her lips impatiently “Do not ponder thoughts, that don’t carry any meaning at the moment. Your training is, as you put it, very much lacking at the moment.”

Marie nodded one last time and tried to banish the thoughts from her mind altogether.

“Now, you can try to light a fire again” Anya demanded, trying to divert the girl’s attention from her glum thoughts. She ignored the girl trying to stifle a groan and only motioned at her to proceed with an impatient gesture.

 

 

 

Chapter 19

Marie quickly tried to gather enough logs together and tried to remember the way, Anya had stacked them before. It took her a few moments, to figure out that she had initially forgotten to include smaller twigs and some straw, which would catch fire at first and help lighten the rest gradually. Although thoughts of the upcoming battle between Trikru and the rest of delinquents kept on bugging at her conscience, Marie tried to concentrate her attention at the task at hand, feeling Anya’s gaze boring into the back of her skull heavily.

It took her long moments of trying to get the fire burning, she cut herself quite deeply, when her fingers slipped and she rammed a piece of the stick into her finger. She bit her lip strongly, trying to keep silent. If she had learned something from watching the training of other warriors, then that giving voice to your pain was weakness and weakness would get you killed in battle. Although Anya had told her decisively that she would not be expected to partake in the war against the other 100, Marie could not predict how long it would take until Anya would in fact expect her to march with them into battle. She had heard already that the survivors on earth seemed to always be fighting one battle or another.

When she finally managed to coax a small fire to life, Marie breathed out a big breath of relief and smiled slightly at the woman, still watching over her from the side.

Anya acknowledged the girl’s efforts with a pleased glint in her brown eyes and a relatively soft tone. “Remember, this one was just so easy to light, because all the wood was dry. Out in the woods it won’t be this easy” she cautioned the child in a strict tone. It was still noteworthy that her charge had indeed managed to light the fire without help, it had taken her much too long, but she had succeeded, although Anya had seen the girl’s patience wavering and she was sure, the girl would have given up after another few moments of not succeeding.

Marie’s smile lessened noticeably, but she nodded that she understood. She was thankful that Anya had let her practise with dry wood at all, she would not put it above the woman to let her start in the worst condition possible, after having thrown her into the water of the lake before. She was still feeling slightly insecure about all the things she did not know that came totally natural to the children of the village. So, she was really grateful that the woman seemed to go a bit easy on her, she was certain that Anya could make this much more unpleasant for her, if she wanted to and she would do well, not to provoke the woman.

Anya motioned the girl closer to herself and quickly grasped her hand, she had noticed when the girl had hurt her finger. She knew that even a small wound could cause great damage, if ignored and not cleaned.

Marie startled visibly at her sudden touch and instinctively tugged at her wrist, wanting to free her hand from Anya’s vice-like grip.

“Keep still” Anya ordered in a brisk tone, strengthening her grip on the child’s wrist slightly and turning it around sharply to be able to inspect the injured finger. A splinter was still visible through some blood and she guided the girl’s fingers a little closer to her face, directing her not to move it an quickly removed the splinter, before she poured some clean water over it and inspected it again carefully for any residual splinters. She let go of the girl’s wrist with a nod and watched the child rub at the slightly reddish skin gingerly.

~~~

A few hours later, Marie had to retract her previous perception. Anya had insisted that in order to prepare Marie for a possible hunt, she needed to learn how to track pray on her own. After eating a quick lunch together, the woman had led her back into the forest surrounding TonDC and ordered her to seek for any signs left behind by possible prey. Tracking an animal proofed to be much more difficult than Marie naively had anticipated and her frustration was mounting as the time passed and she still had not found anything. If she had expected that Anya would actually help her, she was sourly mistaken.

Anya was only shadowing her silently without giving her any aid at all. The woman would just sometimes throw in comments, that Marie did not find helpful at all. Most of the comments were delivered in a sharp voice, sometimes laced with a bit of venom and impatience was creeping into the woman’s voice more and more with every passing moment.

After walking around the forest for what felt like hours, Marie stopped moving all together and crossed her arms over her chest, sulking silently. She had not seen any proof, that there were animals at all except a few tracks. She had proudly pointed them out to the woman, only for Anya to tell her in a bored tone that those were several days old and to top it all off, the woman had launched into a small tirade of criticism about the fact that she had not recognized that on her own.

“What is it now?” Anya asked her young charge in an impatient tone, coming to stop directly in front of the girl and towering over her.

Marie glared at her, grey eyes angry and speaking through clenched teeth “I did not find any tracks. This is completely pointless.”

Anya pinched the bridge of her nose in annoyance “How do you expect to find prey if you give up like that?” exasperation rising at the girl’s insolent antics.

“I do not know if you noticed, but I do not know what to look for at all” Marie complained her temper flaring up, meeting the woman’s heavy stare unfazed in her anger. Her mood was sourer than usual due to the lack of sleep and the rising frustration of failing at her task and Anya only criticising her instead of actually helping her.

The woman growled under her breath and turned on her heel without saying a word and stormed away in fast strides, leaving the startled girl behind. Anya was well aware that they were not too far away from TonDC and the perimeter was already controlled by guards, even if the child would not follow her immediately, another warrior could escort her back to the village. The pyres would be lit soon and she was expected to be present.

Marie blinked behind the woman for a moment, before she realised that she would lose sight of Anya, if she did not hurry behind her immediately. She had lost track of the way, they had covered and was unsure if she would find her way back to TonDC without the woman. Her warnings of Reapers, Mountain Men and other dangerous animals lurking around in the woods, hurried her along further. She was nibbling on her lips nervously, knowing that she should not have snapped at the woman like that. Marie had no idea, how Anya would deal with insolence, the woman had not explained to her what she could expect if she misbehaved. Her mother had usually only sent her to bed without being read a bedtime story or taken a book from her for a few hours and she highly doubted Anya’s punishments would be similar. Internally Marie feared that the woman might even resort to physical punishments. “Anya, please wait” Marie called after the retreating woman loudly, voice already showing a hint of desperation “I am sorry, really.”

Anya let the girl trail after her silently for most of the way to the village and completely ignored her presence all together only stopping on the outskirt of TonDC. She knew from experience that being ignored by a first, would be enough to make the girl stew in her nervousness and make her think twice about being insolent like that in the immediate future. “If it were not for the funeral pyres to be burnt soon, you would still be out in the woods” Anya hissed at the girl impatiently, voice raised and brown eyes hard “If you give up like that on every lesson, you will really never become a warrior.”

Marie looked up at the woman, eyes widening slightly in fright, before she inclined her head meekly feeling chastised, but she knew that she had earned the rant with her previous behaviour.

The atmosphere in the village was gloomy, when they joined the other inhabitants. A large pyre had already been erected in the morning and people had started to gather around it, waiting for the burning ceremony to be opened.  The warriors of the village were all dressed in their armour and wore their war paints on their faces, some had even donned on their masks.

Marie could see two small children, she guessed them to be around four and six year’s old, standing directly in front of the pyre. The older of the two, a brunette girl, held her brother tightly and they were both crying. She immediately realized that they must be the children of one of the fallen warriors. Marie did not see any woman with them as the children were standing alone, only clinging to each other, so she wondered where the children’s mother might be.

The bodies of the warriors had already been placed on the pyre. Both were also dressed in their armour and their war paint had been applied again. To Marie it seemed as if they might just be sleeping and could be waking up at any moment.

When the last rays of sunshine vanished and it turned dark, the commander strolled out of her tent closely followed by Gustus and Indra. All of them were clad in armour and faces painted with war paint as well. Heda looked absolutely impressive in her dark armour with only the blood red sash as a dab of paint.

Lexa spoke some words to the inhabitants of TonDC. But Marie was still unable to understand the commander’s whole speech. She got that Lexa promised her warriors the blood of the delinquents in return, but she did not understand much more. After the commander’s speech, the people were chanting some words. Marie only recognized the word for blood out of them so far, but the atmosphere made goose bumps rise on her arms and she stepped the slightest bit closer to Anya.

The commander was handed a torch and when she ignited the pyres for the two warriors the chanting stopped abruptly. The village was eerie silent all of a sudden except for the two crying children and a few moments later the flames licking at the woods of the pyre, made the wood crackle loudly.

Marie looked up to Anya who was watching the flames consuming the body like everybody else did. Marie inched a bit more closely to Anya, to feel the woman’s strong and reassuring presence.

To her it seemed to take forever for the flames to consume the bodies of the warriors and she felt the smoke biting at her eyes uncomfortably. When the bodies had finally been consumed completely, the whole atmosphere suddenly switched again and Indra stepped forward, giving a short speech to the people of TonDC. She spoke of the honourable warriors the fallen men had been. The honour they had gained in dying a warrior’s death.

Anya explained lowly to Marie that they now would celebrate this night in tribute to them. Celebrating in tribute for someone, translated to gathering around another large bonfire. Alcoholic beverages were distributed freely and stories of the fallen warriors’ lives were recalled.

Marie declined the offer of the alcohol and just lingered close to Anya silently. She did not feel well participating in the celebration of two deaths. Although she had not been with the other delinquents at the time, she knew that they were responsible for these deaths and she had also seen that some of the warriors still held her responsible to a certain degree as well.

She saw Tris animatedly re-telling her siege over Anya in today’s training to a few of the other seconds that were close in age.

When Marie declined the beverage for the third time in the night, Anya forcefully pushed the mug into her hand. “Declining is to dishonour the dead” she explained to her young charge, brown eyes intently staring down into her grey eyes.

Marie looked at the drink disdainfully. Judging from the effect a few mugs had had on others around the bonfire, Marie judged the brew would be pretty strong and probably tasted even worse than the watered-down wine she had had before. Nevertheless, she nodded to Anya and accepted the mug. Disrespecting the deaths of the warriors was not her intention at all. So, she cautiously took a small sip from the mug and had to cough harshly from the burn in her throat.

Anya outright snorted a laugh at her reaction “You do not need to drink more than one mug” she tried to reassure the girl, who had quiet the comical expression on her young face.

But the words did not really reassure Marie at all. The mug felt awfully heavy and she swore she could even after the first sip feel the effects of the alcohol take hold over her body. She already felt warmth infuse her limbs and heating her cheeks. Staring into the dancing flames of the bonfire, Marie wondered silently if the delinquents would be burned as well after the Trikru troops would have killed them. In her mind, there was no chance the others could win against the warriors. She was sure that some would probably die because the delinquents now had more guns, but she highly doubted that they had enough bullets to siege a whole army that outnumbered them by far. She nursed the mug in her hand, taking a little sip occasionally, fighting hard against the urge just to spit the foul-tasting liquid out again and she got lost in her thoughts. On the other side of the fire, Marie could see the two children that had cried at the funeral pyre. She observed how many warriors went to them and spoke a few words to the children. They seemed to have pulled themselves together rather well and now stood proud and tall, no signs left behind of their previous tears and grief.

“They are the warrior’s children, aren’t they?” Marie asked Anya faintly when she was sure no one else would listen.

Anya followed her charge’s gaze and nodded with a grave expression.

“What about their mother?” Marie asked cautiously. She still had not seen any woman with the two children and she doubted that a mother would willingly leave her children to mourn the loss of their father alone.

Anya shook her head “Taken by Maunon two winters ago” her tone only showed a hint of bitterness.

Marie swallowed against the lump suddenly lodged in her throat. She realized that this was what death meant in battle, tearing families apart and leaving behind orphaned children.  “What happens to them now?” Marie asked with a quiver in her voice. She had no idea, what would have happened to her if she had not been put into the sky box. Maybe she would have been locked away anyway with no one to look after her after her mother’s death. The rules on the Ark about a family only being allowed to have one child were resolute and she did not know of a single case of an orphaned child before herself.

“They will be taken to Polis” Anya answered evenly, her brown eyes looking down at Marie and she noticed the child’s obvious mounting confusion “Polis is the capitol. There is an orphanage where orphaned children are taken care of” she added as an explanation. Not every village sent their children away, but those close enough to Polis and in Trikru territory had adapted this custom after Lexa took over as the commander.

The gathering around the bonfire continued long into the night and it took Marie nearly as long to finally empty her mug.

When Anya made them leave at last, Marie was feeling drowsy and light-headed at the same time. Her steps were unsure and her body was swaying with every step she took.

Anya snorted at the girl, it was more than obvious that the girl had no experience with alcohol and she guided her towards their tent with steadying hands on her shoulders to keep her from falling over.

When they had finally gotten ready to sleep, Marie was starting to feel more awake again. “Do you burn all your people after their death?” Marie asked into the silence of the tent, sitting upright within her furs and looking at Anya expectedly.

Anya rolled her eyes, she had already started to fall asleep, when the girl had spoken and alerted her again. “Yes” she simply replied, rolling over to face the child “Only those who committed a grave crime are denied. So, their spirits cannot be set free.”

Marie looked over at the woman with a frown “What do you mean with setting a spirit free?” She was unfamiliar with any real concept of what would happen after the death of a person. Her mother had promised her after her father had been floated, that he would be watching over her from the stars.

Anya huffed in slight annoyance, it was clear that the girl did not want to sleep right now. She had hoped the alcohol would make the girl sleepy and sleep through the rest of the night without the disturbance of nightmares. But it seemed to have had the opposite effect on the girl who appeared wide awake again. “We believe that the spirit of the fallen have to be set free by burning their bodies. So, that the spirits may be rebirthed in the future” she explained, sighing under her breath.

“But what…?” Marie started to ask with a frown on her face, her confusion only rising.

“Sleep, Marie” Anya growled at the girl impatiently. She knew it would not be long, before the sun would rise again. The woman faced her back to Marie without another word, clearly unwilling to answer any more of her questions for the night and efficiently ending the conversation. They both had not gotten much sleep the night prior and dearly needed rest.

Marie laid awake for some time more, unable to silence her thoughts. The idea that the spirits of people were rebirthed was alien to her. She did not know, what she really believed. Her parents had believed that after their death they would be in a sort of heaven. But if Anya was correct in her assumption of reincarnation, her parent’s spirits were trapped in their bodies. The dead on the Ark had been floated as well and she knew that the bodies would be floating around in space for eternity. She bit her lips as silent tears rolled down her cheeks. She mourned the death of her parents anew, alone in the dark night. The alcohol had made Anya’s sleep deeper, so the woman did not wake from the low sounds the girl made.

When the first rays of sunlight started to peek through the tent flap, Marie had finally cried herself into an exhausted sleep.

Only a short time later, Anya woke up. One look at her young charge was enough to revise her plan of waking the girl. The child looked completely exhausted and tear tracks were visible on her pale cheeks. Anya took a deep breath and pulled the furs tighter around the small body. She left the tent silently without waking the still sleeping girl and assigned another guard to the tent. She would start training Tris and continue with Marie’s training later. She also needed to speak with the commander again. Tomorrow they would march against the sky children and Anya wanted Marie to stay with Lexa in the meantime. She also wanted to ask her previous second to look after the girl should something happen to her. Death was a constant companion for warriors, but she wanted to make sure the girl, she had begun to grow fond of, was taken care of after her own death.

 

 

Chapter 20

When Marie woke an undefined time later in the day, she did so with a heavy pounding in her head. She had cried herself to sleep, the previous night and the alcohol had not helped the matter at all. She could not remember ever having had such a head ache and she had difficulties in opening her eyes at all. When she looked over to Anya, she noticed that the woman’s furs were empty. Slowly, she sat up within her furs and tried to listen for sounds of the general on the other side of the curtain. Groggily, she rubbed at her eyes and frowned, when she could not hear anything and realized that the woman must have left her behind. She could already see sunshine falling into the opened tent flap and she scrunched her eyes closed against the bright light. Confused about the fact that the woman had not woken her up, when she left and wondering just how late in the day it already was, she scrambled out of her furs and hurried to make herself presentable for the day, trying to ignore her headache all together. She hoped that she would get used to the consumption of alcohol soon enough. Anya had explained to her already that they did not always have access to a safe water source and that alcohol was usually safer to drink. She struggled with her hair for quiet some time and finally gave up, with a frustrated huff, combing her wavy blonde hair open again with her fingers and just leaving it like that. Anya had also told her, that she would be expected to partake in every morning’s training session from now on and that this usually took place even before the sun rose. It puzzled her greatly, that the woman had let her sleep instead of dragging her to training and a small voice in her head wondered if Anya might have already realized that training her was a waste of time and energy. Her heart sank at the thought and she quickly shook her head, shooing the thought away and turned to leave the tent.

When Marie stepped out of the tent, she directly ran into the guard who Anya had obviously posted there to keep watch over her. She did not know the man personally, but he seemed to be relatively young so he was probably still a second as well. Absentmindedly, Marie mused that the woman would probably not bother to have her guarded, if she did not plan to keep her around.

He insisted on directly escorting her to the training pit personally, the general had been absolutely clear in her orders not to leave her second out of his sight. In the early morning hours, more warriors had arrived and TonDC was now truly crowded with different people. It was easy for Marie to identify the ones that had just arrived, as most of them stared at her as if she was an exhibition in a zoo. Marie was glad for the company of the guard as no one approached them on their way and not all of those who were stared at her, had a friendly expression on their faces, she easily spotted a number of hateful grimaces instead.

She waved goodbye at the man with the hint of a smile on her smiles, which brightened slightly when she saw Tris standing at the edge of the training pits. The older girl’s attention was focused solely on the fight currently ongoing on the training pits and Marie went up to Tris and the other girl greeted her with a kind fleeting smile, brown eyes immediately returning to the fight. Marie looked over the training pits as well and her grey eyes widened in recognition when she noticed Anya and the commander sparring with each other.

“Watch them” the older girl commanded amazement evident in her brown eyes “I hope I’ll be as good someday” her voice clearly portrayed her deep admiration for both women.

Marie tried to reassure the other young warrior, that she was an amazing fighter already, but the girl waved her off and gave her a slight shove to finally truly watch the fight on the pit. Her headache was forgotten when she watched the fight, as it was really astonishing to watch Anya and Lexa fight.

Lexa was slightly shorter than her previous mentor, but what she missed in size she clearly made up in speed. Their movements looked like a deadly dance. They moved with grace and purposefulness. Marie found it hard to decipher all their moves, when they seemed to blend and flow into each other with the speed they were going at.

“Does the commander often spar?” Marie asked Tris lowly after a few moments. She had seen Anya on the training pits before, of course, but she could not remember seeing Lexa here so far.

The older girl clearly only averted her attention to Marie reluctantly “No, almost never. Heda does not have to prove her strength on the training pit anymore. Anya told me she was already an excellent fighter when she was still her second.”

Marie wanted to ask more but refrained. She had not known that Lexa had been Anya’s second in the past and she was astounded to learn this little fact. But it made sense, they did seem to have a certain familiarity with each other which she had already noticed.

The fight seemed to continue forever. They were dancing around each other, sometimes testing the other’s defences so that loud clanging sounds from the swords clashing against each other echoed through the training pits. Marie was slightly confused that she could not spot a single bleeding wound on either of them yet.

In the end, the commander was able to disarm Anya when the older woman started to tire and let her guard down for just a slight moment. They clasped arms and the commander shooed the crowd away, that had gathered around the pits.

Marie looked at the both of them with wide eyes. She still could not see any bleeding wounds, but Anya’s jaw was already starting to darken with a deep bruise.

“I hope you have learnt something from watching” Anya commented when she saw the stares from both of her seconds. Tris was looking at them with admiration shining in her eyes and Marie looked completely astonished.

Tris nodded vigorously in agreement, but remained silent.

Marie’s eyes were still glued to the swords, they had used in their fight when the girl commented in a horrified voice “Yeah, I’ll be dead in under ten seconds in a real fight.”

Lexa seemed to have to bite her lips, as to not laugh out loud at the matter of fact tone the girl had used.

Whereas Anya’s lips thinned and she glared at the younger of her charges “That just shows you, how much you still have to learn and how idiotic your question was if you are to join in the attack” her voice had gotten harder again and the light seemed to leave her brown eyes.

Marie nodded solemnly and looked onto the ground glumly. Silently, she doubted that she would ever be able to learn how to fight like that. Anya had made it sound in the woods, as if she was even unable to walk properly, so how was she supposed to master all of the skills she lacked? She highly doubted that she could even make the movements in this speed, she had just seen Lexa and Anya use, not even thinking about adding the weight of a sword to it. What truly astounded her, was the fact that neither women seemed to be particularly out of breath, even though they had been fighting for quiet a long time.

Lexa saw the self-doubt in the girl’s grey eyes quite clearly and she wanted to show the girl that she might just have to focus on the skills she already possessed instead of focussing on what she could not do at the moment. “Anya told me that you seem to possess a talent for throwing knifes, Marie” Lexa addressed the child in a casual tone.

The girl whipped her head up again with a wide-eyed stare alternating between Anya and Lexa every few seconds.

Anya snorted at the girl’s antics, it was obvious the girl had no idea how to behave around the commander. She was glad internally that the girl was being cautious and was obviously trying not to overstep the rules she was still unfamiliar with. In her position, it was safer to be overly cautious, she could not always be around the child and protect her.

In the end, the girl opened and closed her mouth several times without uttering a word and finally settled on just nodding mutely mixed with a shrug. The helpless expression would have been comical to watch, if Anya and Lexa were not aware of all the others watching the exchange critically as well at the moment. One silent glance between former mentor and commander conveyed enough of a conversation to settle, that they both agreed that the girl dearly needed more confidence to hold herself in their harsh world, where strength mattered above everything else.

To reassure the younger girl, Lexa smiled at her uncharacteristically soft and took a dagger from a holster at her hip and offered the handle to the girl. She knew that what she wanted the girl to do was risky, the child could disgrace herself even more if she failed. But Lexa knew for sure that Anya would not have mentioned the girl's inherit talent, if it would not hold up to her words.

Marie blinked at the offered dagger a few seconds, clearly unsure of what to do, before she cautiously took the weapon and she looked at the commander questioningly.

Lexa looked around and pointed to a pine tree at the edge of the village a good distance away. She wanted the girl to arm for some cones at the top of the tree.

Silently, she hoped the girl really was as good as Anya had told her. She liked this dagger and did not want to lose it. If the girl did not hit her target, it would take hours to find the dagger if they even could spot it altogether.

A few warriors from another small village were openly laughing at the girl now. Lexa lightly glared at them, convinced that neither of them would be able to hit the cones, she had just pointed out, there was a good chance that she would miss them at the first try as well. Internally, Lexa mused that it would have been better to give the girl an easier target, while Marie gulped silently and straightened her shoulders. One threating glance from Anya was enough for the girl to finally accept the challenge.

Tris was watching the proceedings quietly. She had never seen the commander up close until she arrived at TonDC and was intrigued with the woman she turned out to be. Anya had not always been open to tell her things about her previous second, but she knew how proud the general must be to have had a hand in the shaping of the commander.

Anya observed that even Indra had stopped in her tracks and was watching the girl. She hoped her charged would succeed, if only to see Indra’s shocked face. She knew it was not impossible to hit the cones, but it was pretty far and only someone with great skill would hit them on just one try.

Marie was carefully taking aim, while her thoughts raced through her head. She knew, that she would embarrass herself and probably Anya too if she failed. She remembered how her dagger had fallen from the target on the training pits before, not sticking for longer than the fraction of a second. So, she knew that she would not just have to take aim carefully, but also use all the force she could muster. She could feel sweat gathering on her brow as nerves invaded her mind.

She closed her eyes for a few seconds to focus. Something her mother had told her a long time ago flashing up in a memory. When Marie had had difficulties to read out loud, because she stuttered the words out, her mother had told her to focus only on herself and completely forget the kids at the class around her who were laughing at her for stuttering.

So, that was what she did right now as well. After a few deep even breaths, she opened her eyes again and threw the dagger towards the cones as hard as she could.  She waited with a halted breath, watching the blade soar through the air for endless moments and when the dagger did hit the cones, she nearly jumped up in joy only refraining herself in the last moment, but she could not stop the huge grin on her face when she looked to the others around her, grey eyes shining with pride joy. Lexa looked mildly impressed and nodded at her in silent acknowledgment. Anya was more occupied with eying Indra’s shocked face at the moment, her gaze slightly smug at her charge’s accomplishment. Tris smiled at the younger girl. She knew that she would not have been able to hit the cones, throwing knifes had never been one of her strong suits.

Lexa looked smugly at the other warriors who had doubted the girl’s ability and was satisfied to see a look of clear disbelief on their faces.  Internally, she was relieved that the child had succeeded, she had already mentally prepared to defend the girl’s obvious lack of skill in case of her dagger missing the cones. “You did well, Marie” the commander praised with a slight smile. Even Gustus who had hovered behind them silently, looked mildly impressed of the throw.

“If you can find the dagger, you are allowed to keep it” Lexa offered the girl with a kind smile. Anya subtly rolled her eyes at the commander and it was evident Gustus wanted to say something, but refrained in front of all the other warriors still gathered around the pits and watching the exchange.

Marie’s grey eyes had gone wide again and she was still smiling a blinding smile.

“Tris can assist you in the search for the dagger” Anya told Marie and the glance she threw Tris’ way was order enough to be dismissed.

Tris took the younger girl by her sleeve, pulling her along, when she was still thanking the commander rapidly.

As soon as the girls were out of hearing range, Anya rolled her eyes at the commander critically “Really, gifting a new second with one of your own daggers, commander?”

Lexa just huffed in response and jutted her chin out defiantly. Anya and Gustus both would not dare to question her in front of the other warrior’s and one glare was enough to shut both of them up. She knew that it had been a tad bit overdone to promise the child a gift of such honour, but she would not retract her words now. The child was obviously truly gifted with an inherit talent and she was curious to see what else the child might be able to do with a little patience and training.

Tris pulled Marie through the village in fast strides. The dagger had hit the cones and had fallen down together with them. She knew that did not mean the dagger would just lay on the ground, it could have become entangled with smaller branches or leaves and was stuck somewhere on the tree. Tris knew that Marie’s previous experiences with climbing were not excellent, but hiding in a tree was essential for some scout work.

“Come, I hope we are lucky and the dagger fell from the tree with the cones” Tris told Marie and let go of her sleeve.

“Where else would it be?” Marie asked confusion on her face.

Tris snorted in silent laughter, the girl really knew nothing about trees. She pointed up to the branches silently with a meaningful glance.

“Oh” came the sorrowful reply as the meaning of the other girl’s words sank into Marie.

Now Tris could not contain her laughter anymore and laughed out loud at the downtrodden expression on Marie’s face.

Marie pouted at Tris silently.

“Don’t fret, I do not mean harm” Tris still laughed slightly.

Marie glared at her lightly, but nodded.

They reached the tree only a few moments later and as it seemed they were not lucky. They could not spot the dagger anywhere on the ground, so it probably really got entangled on the way down.

Marie glared at the tree as if it had personally offended her somehow, prompting another bout of laughter from Tris.

“Then we will have to climb” Tris told the other girl what was obvious to both of them.

Marie reluctantly nodded and exhaled loudly “I can’t climb.” She crossed her arms over her chest with a pout, her glare deepening.

Tris bit her lips to stop laughing “I know, but you have to learn it. Trikru warriors often use the trees as cover.”

Marie huffed again, but nodded at the logic. Tris was much more patient with her now than Anya had been. To be fair they now had the time for Marie to really just get a feeling on how to climb and where to place her feet and how to hold her balance.

Marie quickly found that being taught something from Tris was vastly different. The older girl first patiently explained with words what Marie should do and then slowly demonstrated how it was done correctly.

In the end, Tris and Anya had both been right getting into the tree was not that hard, when she had the time. Fortunately, they did find the dagger quickly in the tree and it truly was still stuck in the cones it had hit.

Marie triumphantly took the dagger together with the cones and slowly climbed back down, which she fortunately managed this time without falling down again.

“See, it isn’t that hard” Tris commented kindly, when Marie smiled at her after her feet touched solid ground again.

Marie nodded, pleased with herself to have managed to climb up and down without another accident. “You are a really good teacher” she acknowledged Tris’ efforts with honest gratitude, Marie highly doubted her success in retrieving the dagger without the older girl's help.

“We should heed back, there will be a meeting for the attack tomorrow soon” Tris told the other girl, waving off her gratitude with a smile.

Marie nodded, the smile leaving her features altogether. She had completely forgotten about that.

Tris tried to lift Marie’s mood on the way back, but was completely unsuccessful and admitted defeat. She was excited about the attack on the sky children. It would be her first bigger fight and it was an honour to her skills that Anya allowed her to accompany the army.

Anya was already waiting for Tris at the outskirt of the village and sent Marie to Lexa. The commander would not get herself involved in the fight for now. A village had been burnt, so it was a Trikru matter right now.

The woman watched Marie walk through the village obediently with hunched shoulders, her good mood had vanished completely.

“What happened?” Anya asked Tris lowly with a frown on her face.

“I told her about the meeting for the attack” Tris admitted softly feeling slightly guilty.

Anya nodded silently and watched the girl disappear into the commander’s tent with a downtrodden expression on her face.

 

 

 

 

 

 

Chapter 3: Chapter 21 - 30

Chapter Text

Chapter 21

The guards outside of the commander’s tent let Marie enter without any objection, as they had been informed the girl would be sent there. Some already thought it strange that their Heda would spare any time for the sky girl at all and questioned their leader's possible hidden agenda in whispered rumours.

Marie nodded politely at the guards, as she entered. Her mother had always instilled in her, how important proper manners were.

Lexa was sitting on her wooden throne and Gustus stood beside the woman stoically, whereas Indra stood opposite of them and broke off the conversation as the girl entered. Turning slightly and glaring at the child.

Lexa immediately spotted Marie’s mood and furrowed her brow. Maybe the girls had been unable to find the dagger?

Indra’s warriors would not join in the fight tomorrow, so that TonDC would remain protected and they would be able to monitor any movements from the Mountain that way, so the woman was not required to attend the meeting for tomorrows attack. Internally, Lexa knew that it was only a matter of time now until the Mountain Men would get involved. It was unlikely that the two metal contraptions fallen from the Sky, would have been missed by them. Although her warriors had been unsuccessful to figure put how the Mountain Men watched their surroundings, it was clear that they somehow did. The fog usually appeared only if someone crossed the river towards the Mountain after all.

“Weren’t you able to find the dagger?” Lexa asked the girl, leaning slightly towards the girl in her throne, when the child stopped in front of her looking insecure and small, shoulders visibly sagged and expression downtrodden.

Marie shook her head in the negative and held up the dagger as physical proof with a slight fleeting smile, that dimmed again notably after only a second again.

Indra muttered something that sounded suspiciously as “ungrateful brat” under her breath, too low for Marie to hear clearly, but the dark-skinned woman’s expression was full of hate and anger. Even Gustus was slightly glaring at the girl now. Being gifted with one of the commander’s personal weapons was a great honour, the girl obviously did not quiet grasp its magnitude yet. Lexa somehow doubted that the child was truly ungrateful, it did not fit with how she had seen the girl behave until now.

“What is it then?” Lexa inquired in a calm tone and serene expression, relaxing her posture slightly; she had noticed already how the child seemed unsure in her presence. She had planned to give the girl a lesson in written Trigedasleng. Not all of her generals were able to read, but she thought it to be an important skill. Anya had told her beforehand, that the girl was able to read and write English, so it should not be a very hard lesson for her.

Marie bit her lips for a few moments and let her shoulders drop even more “The attack is tomorrow” she stated in a subdued tone. Her grey eyes only connected minutely with the commander’s before she averted them again, it was obvious that the girl was troubled deeply by her thoughts on the matter.

That was everything the girl offered freely as an explanation, but Lexa pursued her lips in slight irritation. Anya and she had previously talked about the attack, her general was fearing that the girl’s ties to Skykru would be too deep for a smooth transition into Trikru. The child seemed much more sensitive and Anya was not certain of the child’s ability to truly adapt to their culture.

Indra and Gustus shared a knowing look and Indra resumed her silent glare. Lexa had forbidden her to speak up against the girl again openly, so the general kept silent although her reluctance was more than obvious.

“I understand that it is hard for you to accept that the other Sky children will be killed…” Lexa started to tell Marie in a calm tone and a hint of compassion infused her green eyes.

To the commander’s silent consternation, the child interrupted her mid-sentence. “It is not that!” Marie exclaimed voice raised slightly and her hands balled into fists at her side, frustration flashing over her features openly. As quick as the girl’s anger had risen, it deflated as well and the child looked even more troubled “Not completely at least…” she added in a whisper.

Gustus also glared at the girl now for having interrupted Lexa so rudely, but Lexa could spot the same confusion in his eyes she was feeling at the girl’s sudden change of mood. Internally, she hoped that the girl would learn quickly to guard her feelings better, she wore them on her face without any filter. Lexa looked at the girl in silence, a question burning in her green eyes and waiting for the child to explain herself.

After a moment the girl looked up at her and exhaled loudly, before she did continue in a slightly strained voice “I should feel more empathic that they are all going to die, I know that.” Her shoulders visibly sagged again, probably from guilt at her own feelings.

Lexa had listened to the girl’s words with a deepening frown, confusion rising in her mind at the girl’s illogical way of thinking; she could have easily fathomed the girl to be downtrodden at the prospect of her people’s impending extinction, but something else was obviously upsetting her although Lexa could not think of something else. Sending her to participate in the fight would be a suicide mission and the girl was aware that she could not fight well enough to help in a real fight. She had voiced as much after watching herself and her general compete in combat just this morning.

“The others have guns” Marie explained after another beat of heavy silence and her voice quivered noticeably, fear showed clearly in her big grey eyes “What if Anya and Tris won’t even reach them before they are shot down? Or your other warriors? A gun against a sword does not seem like a fair fight” the child’s voice had risen at the end and her grey eyes were now locked with Lexa’s.

Indra and Gustus both were blinking their eyes at the girl in silent astonishment. Marie was obviously worried more for their warriors, than she was for her own people, a train of thought absolutely alien to them.

Lexa was lost for words for a moment as well, taken aback at the child’s depths of compassion for her warriors. Her grey eyes had shown with honesty and her emotions were displayed visibly on her pale face, easy to read. “My warriors are way more trained in the art of battle, Marie” Lexa reassured the girl in a kind tone. But all of them knew, that guns were weapons they could not fight well against. They had a strategy and if all worked to plan the losses would be minimal, but there would be losses. But losses were a part of every battle anyway. “Falling in battle is an honourable death and death is a constant companion to warriors, Marie” Lexa continued in an even voice as she gazed down at the girl “I will not lie to you. There will be losses, but we will be victorious” her tone was sure and she held Marie’s gaze for long moments.

Marie nodded with a solemn expression, but it was evident that the girl did not feel reassured in the slightest and she was biting at her lower lip.

Indra eyed the girl with a contemplating expression and it was clear to Lexa, that the woman was already starting to adjust her previous conception of the young girl. She might not have the physical strength the other seconds all had but there was another strength in this girl. Lexa could not quiet put a finger on it yet, but something was special about the girl, something Anya must have sensed as well. She had been surprised that she had not been forced to chose someone as the girl’s first.

“Indra, Gustus, leave us” Lexa commanded authoritatively, waving dismissively at both of them. Indra nodded at once and left without another word, her dark eyes minutely flitting back to the blonde child, whereas Gustus lingered behind for a moment clearly reluctant to leave her side. One silent warning glare was enough to convince him to follow her orders.

Marie watched them leave silently and her grey eyes returned to Lexa’s face expectantly.

Lexa saw that the girl was still holding the dagger in her fingers and offered one of her sheaths to the girl that could be strapped to her thigh.

The girl accepted it gratefully and Lexa stood from her throne to show her how to fasten it and what position would not hinder her movements.

The lesson itself worked rather well and Lexa was positively surprised to note that the girl possessed a quick mind and was obviously still eager to learn. The girl’s pre-existing ability to read and write English helped her progress greatly. Trying to read Trigedasleng would improve her skill of the new language even faster than just speaking it ever could. Lexa was pleased to spot the child relaxing her tense frame as the time passed and the girl seemed to gradually become more confident to actually ask her questions, although a residual tenseness and caution remained.

Anya’s return to the commander’s tent, after the meeting had been called to a close, ended their lesson and she nodded thankfully to Lexa for having kept the girl close to her.

Marie softly bid goodnight to Lexa, a shy smile flitting over her features before she followed Anya through the village. The atmosphere in the village seemed excited, dimming Marie’s own mood. Preparations for the attack were ongoing everywhere she looked.

Anya guided them back to their shared tent and they ate some dinner there in a heavy silence. Marie could not help herself and she was looking up to Anya every few seconds.

Anya had picked up on the girl’s strange behaviour almost immediately, but she was also relatively sure of the origin. The girl was making sure, she was still there, although she was slightly astounded to note honest worry for her own person in the girl’s grey eyes. She had of course already noted that the child seemed to wish to form a bond to her immediately, but Anya had been certain that it would take more time for Marie to actually do so and warrant what she assumed to be fear of losing her. She already expected that the girl would not be able to sleep this night as well. So, after dinner she opted to do something that she had never before done with Lexa or Tris. Anya directly made Marie lie down with her in her bedroll and let the girl snuggle up to her, hoping that she would be able to sleep better this way. The battle would take place tomorrow and although she was confident in their strategy, she could not afford to be overly exhausted and by thus easily distracted.

“Please promise to come back tomorrow” the girl whispered in a pleading voice moments later into the darkness in the tent and her small fingers fisted in the material of Anya’s shirt.

Anya stiffened a bit and had to forcefully exhale. She had no idea, why the girl felt this connected to her already after only a few short days and she knew she could not make this promise without lying. A warrior would never be able to promise to return safe from battle. “I will try my hardest” she offered sincerely instead.

The girl seemed to understand and nodded against her chest tightening the grip she had on Anya.

Her closeness had helped greatly and the girl had thankfully not woken up from any nightmares. So, Anya was glad to wake up reasonably rested on the next morning.

One glance into Marie’s face was enough, to know that the girl was totally frightened. She looked pale and her grey eyes appeared even huger in her face, staring at Anya forlornly. Anya tried to be as gentle and reassuring with her charge as possible without eluding the truth.

When they met Tris for a breakfast at the bonfire, her charges could not have been more different. Where Marie was biting her lips and looking small and frightened, Tris was buzzing with excited energy.

They would not be doing any physical training this morning, as they would start their march in a few hours and Anya did not wish to tire Tris too much. Lexa had agreed to look after Marie again in the meantime. For Anya’s taste, Tris was overly excited and she changed her decision against the physical training immediately after breakfast.

Marie was allowed to only watch them spar and she blinked in open puzzlement. It took Anya only a few moments to correct Tris’ cockiness and the girl looked abashed. Marie internally wondered if Tris had only been able to win against Anya in the last training, because the woman had actively let her win, Tris did not have even the sliver of a chance in their short match.

“You are a good fighter, Tris” Anya reassured the girl “But overconfidence will get you killed faster than you think in battle. It makes you reckless, remember that later.”

Tris looked up at the woman immediately, brown eyes understanding, before she nodded with a slight smile and rubbed at her smarting knees. Anya had been careful not to inflict any real injuries before the fight nevertheless. She just wanted the girl to be more cautious and nothing was more effective in bringing down an overconfident warrior than showing them proof of their many flaws.

Marie had watched them silently. But she would take this lesson seriously as well.

The rest of the time before the attack, Anya made Marie try to shoot a bow.

The girl was not completely skill-less, but it was clear that her attention was lacking. Anya wondered whether she would show the same talent with a bow as she had with the throwing knifes if she just focused correctly. She had tried snapping at the child to get her to focus, but it had not shown any positive result, if anything Marie had been even less focused afterwards, her grey eyes searching her own even before she truly let go of the bow string.

Marie had great difficulties to focus her attention at all on what she was doing. If possible, she would have liked to turn the time faster. So that Anya and Tris would have returned already. On the other side, she felt awful, that she barely spared the other delinquents any thoughts at all. But she guessed, that she had already accepted their deaths as a given.

When it was time to change into the armour, Marie trudged behind them silently looking to be on the verge of tears. She watched Tris and Anya change and apply war paint quickly. Both looked more ruthless now, but for Marie they still felt like her new family and she prayed she would not lose them already.

Anya tried to ignore the girl’s obvious difficulties, she had already tried to reassure her with words and they had not shown any effect. There was nothing else she could say to ease her mind. When Tris and she were both ready to join the army, she sent her older second ahead for a moment and opened her mouth to order Marie to seek out the commander, when the girl suddenly launched herself at her, hugging her midriff tightly for a moment. Anya swallowed forcefully and squeezed the girl’s shoulders for a moment, before she eased out of the girl’s arms and nudged her towards the tent flaps.

A few moments later Marie was standing next to the commander, who oversaw the leaving warriors, she had lost sight of Anya and Tris some time ago already. The girl was constantly biting her lips now and Lexa already could see a red shimmer of blood on them. The girl seemed oblivious to the nervous gesture altogether.

When the war drums started, Marie took a startled step closer to Lexa seeking any comfort she could get in the moment. Gustus glared a bit at her, but did not make amends to remove the girl. Lexa also allowed it for now, she could see that this was taking a great toll on the young girl. They all had to remember, that Marie was completely unfamiliar with the concept of war. On the ground, war had been a constant after the end of the old world. But the girl still had to get familiar with their ways, so Lexa opted to be lenient with her as well. Only when the last warrior had disappeared in the woods and the sounds of the drums started to fade, did Lexa direct Marie to her tent.

Gustus stayed back at the entrance of the tent, leaving them in private for now.

Lexa looked at the girl and she had to admit she looked awfully small at the moment. With an almost pitying look, Lexa silently thought that the girl would have to harden fast to survive in their world. Where the sky had left the child soft, she would need to be hard on the ground. As best as she could, she diverted the girl’s attention back to the lessons they had started the previous evening. Marie’s progress was slow today as the girl was unable to concentrate properly. Lexa had to take some calming breaths sometimes as to not lose her patience with the girl.

“Marie, I know it is hard right now, but you need to concentrate” Lexa rebuked the girl in an even tone, while she kept her eyes gentle.

But all the lessons were forgotten long moments later when a loud explosion suddenly resonated outside.

Lexa whirled around and strode out of the tent in big strides, while Marie followed the commander quickly, grey eyes wide and fear showing on her features.

Marie could see smoke emitting in a big cloud in the distance and the smoke seemed to come from the direction of the drop ship. She was looking at the cloud of smoke with horrified eyes and Lexa was already shouting orders for scouts to be sent to the explosion.

Gustus and Indra had looked in another direction and were now casting worried glances in the direction of Mount Weather. An explosion this size would not have gone by the Mountain Men’s attention. Even if the Mountain Men may have miraculously been oblivious to the Sky children’s presence until now, it was sure they were aware of them now as grounders did not use any kind of explosives.

“What happened?” Marie asked in a low quivering voice, when Lexa returned to the girl a few moments later.

The commander could only share a few worried glances with her general and her guard. There were only two big questions for them. Had they underestimated the sky children this gravely? And what about the Mountain Men?

 

 

Chapter 22

The scouts sprang into actions immediately around TonDC, barely a moment after Lexa had stopped barking orders to them. Marie was ushered back into the commander’s tent by Lexa herself. There was nothing they could do now besides wait for news.

Lexa, Indra and Gustus seemed worried, whereas Marie looked to be almost apathetic with worry. The girl could not halt her racing thoughts and her heart was drumming loudly in her own ears. From what she had seen from the inhabitants of TonDC, she logically knew that the explosion could not have been caused by them. So, that only left the other delinquents as the creators of the explosives. Marie had not been aware that they had anything to build explosives with, but if she remembered correctly Monty was rather affine to technical stuff, so Marie mused that he could have come up with something. She shook her head slightly, wondering who exactly had caused the explosion was useless. Her mind was invaded with a persistent question which made her stomach churn with worry. What if Anya and Tris had been in the middle of the explosion? She knew how strong an explosion could be and was absolutely certain that no one would survive standing directly next to that.

Lexa was speaking rapidly in Trigedasleng with Indra, while Gustus had returned to the spot beside the throne to guard his commander.

Both Lexa and Gustus kept an eye on Marie the whole time. It was clear, the girl had fallen into a shocked trance like state. She was standing in the middle of the tent staring at nothing in particular and was breathing shallowly.

Marie did hear the ongoing conversation, as if her head was stuck under water and she unable to decipher even one single word of what was said, she was not even certain in which language they were speaking at the moment.  She was jostled out of her trance, when loud shouts suddenly resonated outside of the tent. Her head whirled around to the shouts as Lexa already glided out of the tent followed by Gustus on her heels.

Marie hurried behind them, feeling her heart beat strongly in her throat, to hear what the scouts that had returned had found. Her brows creased in startled confusion, when she realized how many of the warriors who had left to fight against the rest of the 100 had returned with the scouts. Frantically Marie scanned the crowd for Anya and Tris, but no matter how often her grey eyes searched the crowd in rising desperation, she could not spot them among the other warriors.

She abandoned her search with a sinking heart and instead tried to listen to the report the head of the scouts was giving to the commander at the moment. She was not able to understand everything, for the man was speaking for too quickly for her, but it was enough to gather, that the other delinquents had blown up a bridge when a part of the army had already been on said bridge. The bridge obviously had been the only direct connection between the place of the drop ship and the woods, the army needed to regroup now and return, using a longer way. Marie’s blood ran cold and she felt her breaths stuck in her throat upon hearing the report, as she knew that Anya as one of the most high-ranking generals and Tris as her second were supposed to be at the very front of the army, so they must have been caught directly in the explosion. She remained rooted to the spot, breathing erratic and vision blurring slightly, while the warriors around her were already springing back to action.

It took some time, but in the end the commander together with Indra organised a group to return to the site of the explosion to look for the wounded and to gather the dead to give them a proper burial ceremony. Marie barely heard any of their plans, her grey eyes were fixed into the treeline, hoping against all sense that Anya and Tris would just suddenly appear out of thin air. When the warriors started to move again, she was snapped out of her thoughts.

Marie just now realized that no one was paying her any real attention and that the commander had already joined the group to leave TonDC. Anya’s clear order to stay in TonDC, no matter what, rang loudly in her mind for a moment. So, with drooping shoulders Marie trudged through the camp. Around her warriors were running around the camp gathering everything that could be used to carry bodies.

She looked around and noted that still no one was paying her any attention and a defiant glint appeared in Marie’s grey eyes. She quickly gathered a piece of cloth and wrapped it around her hair as a shawl. She knew how easily she was being identified by her bright hair, most of the people here had at least dark blonde hair like Anya, but she had not encountered a single one to have such blonde hair like she did. As silently and unobtrusively as possible, Marie followed the departing group of warriors through the wood, her heart beating loudly in her chest. She did not know for certain, why she felt compelled to see the site of the explosion herself, but she just followed them, trying not to think at all and hoping against all sense that Anya and Tris had simply remained behind to help the wounded. Fortunately for her the warriors’ attention was focused on the area before them, so that they did not pay close attention to the movements behind them.

Marie followed the group of warriors led by the commander undetected like this  to the blown up bridge.

Her grey eyes widened at the sight of the destruction, the bridge had been completely destroyed. She noted how narrow the bridge had been so that not many warrior could have possibly been on it simultaneously, when the explosion occurred.

Nevertheless, quiet a large number of bodies lay scattered around the bridge, Marie forced her eyes to flit over them, afraid that she might find Anya and Tris among them. She exhaled forcefully in relief, when she was able to finally spot Anya, the woman was checking for survivors, going around the bodies in the ground and testing if they still breathed.

Marie immediately began to move in Anya's direction, her heart calming it's frantic beat slightly. What she had not anticipated when she followed the group without permission was, what would be the retribution she might face for her disobedience.

The commander had already stepped up to Anya and they were speaking rapidly in Trigedasleng about what had happened here. Lexa’s eyes immediately spotted the girl approaching them and she narrowed her eyes with them flashing dangerously. No one had given the girl permission to join the group of warriors or even leave TonDC on her own at all. She had expected for the girl to return to her tent and stay there, it had not even crossed her mind to make sure of that.

Marie faltered in her steps, when suddenly both women were glaring daggers at her. Anya harshly grabbed her by the arm in a bruising grip “What are you doing here? You were told to stay in TonDC!” her voice was sharp and her brown eyes unrelenting.

Marie stuttered a bit and winced at the painful grip Anya had on her arm “Well, technically …” she began to try and justify herself.

Lexa interrupted them, she knew how worried the girl was about Anya, but disobedience could not be tolerated either “I am sure you will quickly rid your new second of her rebellious tendencies.”

Marie gulped rather loudly and nodded with down cast eyes, shamefaced.

Before Anya could say anything more on the subject, Tris interrupted them, appearing from the tree line. Marie breathed deeply in relief, seeing the older girl as well.

The girl looked unharmed on the first glance, but as Tris opened her mouth to speak, she started to cough, her brown eyes widening in obvious panic and blood glistened on her lips. She seemed to have trouble breathing and Anya caught her, when her legs abruptly gave under her. Marie watched the older girl crumble and her blood ran cold.

Anya clutched Tris' limp body in her arms and she motioned three warriors to follow her as she hurried away from the bridge and Lexa quickly nudged Marie to follow them, the blonde girl had simply watched the proceedings frozen in place. The girl would not be able to help much at the bridge and Anya was surely already worrying enough about Tris’ health. So, Lexa thought it best that Marie accompanied her mentor. Fortunately the explosion had caused enough chaos that the other warriors did not think too much of Marie’s presence. Lexa was internally grateful that she as the commander would not be forced to punish the girl publicly. Anya could afford to be much more lenient with Marie. Even Lexa had had bouts of rebellions in her youth and she remembered her old mentor’s way to eradicate them well.

Marie hurried quickly to follow them, only fleetingly looking up at the commander before she turned on her heels. She seemed lucky that Anya had thought about ordering one of the warriors to wait for her and the masked figure hoisted her onto a horse behind her, before he kicked the mount to follow the others. They were travelling at an amazing speed through the woods, but Marie internally wondered why they did not travel towards TonDC. She had definitely not come from this direction. It did not take them long to reach their destination. There were some ruins or tunnels of sorts ahead of them, where they carried Tris into. The whole way no one had talked a word to her so far and Marie was unnerved by the silence.

Marie watched as Anya placed Tris on a table and she could hear the other girl struggling for breaths.

Anya whirled around suddenly and commanded the two warriors to wait outside, before her brown eyes found Marie, her hard gaze drilling into the child's grey eyes. “You are going to stay here with Tris” Anya commanded in a clipped tone with angrily glittering eyes.

Marie opened her mouth to object, but closed it as quickly again when Anya let out a warning growl, her features angry and her gaze hard.

“You will guard Tris until we return. If you even take one step outside and I hear of it, you will regret it” Anya threatened, voice somehow deathly low and still frightening “Am I clear?!”

Marie nodded rapidly in agreement and with apologetic eyes returned to Tris’ side.

Anya left without another word and Marie was left alone with the unconscious other girl.

Cautiously Marie took one of Tris’ hands in her own. She thought it a good sign, that Tris was still breathing but her breaths sounded laboured and pained. There was no blood visible on the girl’s armour, so there seemed to be no superficial wounds. She wondered what else could be affecting Tris' breathing like this.

Marie had no idea how long she waited there with Tris, but every second seemed to stretch into eternity. When it started to darken outside, Marie went around the room and lit a few candles.

At one point Tris briefly woke up. Her brown eyes were panicked and she definitely had trouble breathing. Marie tried to calm her down as best as possible, gripping her hands strongly and trying to address her with soothing words and hoped that Anya would return fast with help. Only a few moments later Tris lost consciousness again and Marie was unbelievably glad that she could still hear her breathing indicating that the other girl was still alive.

When there was the sound of movements from outside, Marie hastily  grabbed the dagger she still had strapped to her tight, afraid that someone might attack them or an animal searching for something to eat.

She breathed a mute sight of relief, when it was Anya who entered the structure, followed on her heels by the two warriors who each dragged Clarke and Finn behind them.

Marie looked behind them confused of what they were doing here, she had hoped that Anya would bring a healer for Tris and lowered her dagger again. She did not need to defend herself from Anya of course.

Clarke and Finn were both staring at her with wide eyes, disbelief clear on their faces. Marie realised that either John had not arrived back at the camp yet or he had not told the others that she now lived with the Trikru.

“You are going to heal her” Anya commanded Clarke and pointed to Tris. The girl’s laboured breathing sounded even more strained now “If she dies, so does the boy” proclaimed in a threatening tone and stared at the blonde girl for a moment, before she let go of Clarke’s arm.

Marie could see Clarke gaping at Anya and the blonde argued that she lacked the equipment to be able to offer Tris any help.

Anya commanded one of the warriors to gather what Clarke needed. “You will stay with them” Anya ordered Marie and the girl nodded immediately in mute agreement.

The others left the building again, probably to search for what Clarke had asked.

“What are you doing here, Marie? We thought you might have been caught in the acid fog, when we did not find you” Finn directly addresses her when the grounders were out of earshot “We will get you out of here” he promised with a desperate certainty.

Marie looked at them in confusion, she was not here against her will after all, but the others obviously thought different.

Tris started to gasp loudly suddenly and Marie turned to the older girl again, her grey eyes widening in fright for her.

“Help her” Marie pleaded Clarke, she could see that Tris’ condition was getting worse. The blonde nodded silently and turned to Tris.

“What happened to her?” Clarke asked, looking up at Marie minutely.

Marie looked at both of them with an accusing stare “She was on the bridge when you made it explode” her voice was hard and her lips thinned.

Finn was helping her to get Tris in a sitting position, when Anya and the other two warriors returned. One of them was carrying a bag of sorts and laid it out on the floor. It seemed to contain medical equipment.

“Why do you think I could help her?” Clarke asked Anya in honest confusion, as she inspected the instruments.

“Lincoln told her” Finn concluded from his place at the side line, before Anya answered.

“As I did” Marie added and watched as Clarke put her ear to Tris’ back, listening to her breathing.

“Her left lung seems to have collapsed” Clarke observed with a worried frown. Marie drew in a harsh breath, she doubted Clarke’s abilities would be enough to save Tris’ life from that kind of injury.

Clarke looked through the bag the others had brought and made a cut in Tris’ side from which blood immediately ran fast.

Marie looked on concerned as Anya came closer to investigate and snarled at Clarke “What have you done?!” her features showing her rage.

Clarke tried to explain to the woman that Tris could not breathe, because of the blood in her lung but when Anya shoved Clarke away from Tris, Finn tried to intervene and a few seconds later both lay on their backs with swords drawn to their throats in warning.

Marie tried to calm the situation down, because she remembered Clarke’s mother doing something similar to her own mom, when her lungs were full of blood. It had helped her mother for some time and she deeply wished that it would now help Tris as well, she did not wish to see the older girl die.

Anya and the warriors looked doubtful, but they waited to judge Tris’ condition. The girl’s breathing did not sound as laboured any more, but she was still unconscious. Marie had started to worry for all the blood the older girl had already lost.  The waiting with nothing to do was proving to be the worst thing ever to Marie. She would have liked to step closer to Anya to draw comfort from her presence, but the woman seemed unapproachable at the moment and Marie did not want to strain the atmosphere even more. The minutes stretched endlessly and Marie bit at her lips in agitation.

When Anya felt Tris’ forehead sometime later, she observed that the girl was running a fever.

Marie could see Clarke losing her nerves and the other girl was blaming Anya now for even sending a young girl into battle. To Marie Clarke’s lashing out now only proved that the girl herself had given up hope to safe Tris’ life.

“That is the way we train them to become warriors” Anya answered seriously, voice controlled and expression drawn.

“So that the killing can continue easily forever” Clarke shouted hotly and Anya took a threating step closer to the insolent girl.

“You blew up the bridge, you did this” Anya hissed in her face with angry eyes and barely refrained herself from just killing her on the spot.

Clarke told Anya that the only option to save Tris was to give her clean blood. When Clarke asked Anya for her blood, a warrior stepped in and declined immediately, all three warriors seemed set against even the idea of the concept. Marie knew from Nyko that the survivors on the ground did not use any blood transfusions anymore and the concept was alien to them.

“Take mine” Marie offered from the side. She would do what she could to safe the other girl and standing beside the proceedings without anything to do was making her antsier by the minute. In her opinion, it was already taking way too long for Clarke to do something again to try and help Tris who was obviously suffering, breaths rattling and sweat glistening on her face.

When Clarke finally had a syringe and a needle that would do, she took some blood from Marie. Marie pressed her lips together against the stinging pain and shared a worried glance with Anya. She could see through the angry façade how worried the woman was for Tris.

Marie had listened to Tris’ laboured breaths the whole time as a sign for her continued survival and suddenly they stopped. She turned her eyes to Tris and felt her breath stuck in her throat in silent horror; Finn had also observed the missing breath.

“She stopped breathing Clarke” the boy softly said with remorseful eyes.

The warriors shared a heavy look and Marie could see Anya’s eyes glistening with unshed tears as she bent down with a dagger and cut a braid from Tris’ hair.

One of the warrior’s took Tris’ body and left the building. Marie was still standing in the middle of the room speechless, with silent tears running down her cheeks. Tris had died, Clarke had been unable to safe the other girl. She was barely able to think straight against the transition of Tris' death.

“Take the boy away and kill him” Anya ordered one of the other warriors in a deadly tone, expression steeled again.

Another warrior stepped up to Clarke and held her in place while Finn was guided away with no resistance at all by a masked warrior. He just told Clarke to cease the fighting to safe herself instead.

“No!” Clarke screamed and tried to get away from the warrior holding her in place “I tried everything, please” voice shrill in desperation.

But her pleas went unanswered and Marie followed Anya and the warrior carrying Tris’ body outside.

Marie was feeling numb and blood was loudly rushing in her ears, her nightmare had become partially true already.

 

Chapter 23

Horses had been tied to the outside of the structure and the grounder carrying Tris’ body was already mounting his own, carefully holding the girl’s limp body to his chest.

Tris had had the respect of the warriors of TonDC. She had been exceptionally brave and experienced for someone so young in years, already having earned her own kill marks. She had been well known and honoured to have been the general's second.

“What happens now?” Marie asked Anya almost in a pained whisper, when the woman just stood routed next to her horse with a stony expression contorting her features. Marie could barely look away from the warrior holding Tris' body, one of her hands hanging beside his larger form limply.

Anya looked at the blonde girl in front of her and drew in one harsh breath, pushing the loss of her older second from her mind for now. The time to mourn for her loss would come, but it was not now.

“The boy will be executed” the woman told Marie and nodded towards Finn who just stood next to the grounder holding him with an empty expression on his face, it appeared that he had recognized that there was nothing he could do to change his fate “Tris’ body needs to be returned  to TonDC to be put on the pyres with the other warriors that fell on the bridge,” although Anya's features were blank, Marie could still see the sliver of loss in her brown eyes “after that we will march on their camp again, razing it to the ground” the little expression of feelings left the woman's eyes at the last part, leaving them hard and her features were harsh and cold, clearly waiting to get retribution in the names of those they had just lost.

The masked warrior holding Finn just nodded to Anya without a verbal answer and mounted his own horse with Finn as if the boy did not weigh anything at all.

After a moment of consideration Anya added to her younger charge “You will accompany Caliban and the girl to TonDC.”

Marie nodded mutely, sensing that trying to argue with the woman now would not have gone over too well and watched Anya mount her horse and follow the one with Tris’ body. She would have preferred to accompany Anya, but she would not question the woman. It was neither her place nor the right time to do so. Marie internally hoped that Anya would not be too angry about her leaving TonDC, she would not regret her decision now. If she had stayed in the village, she would not have seen Tris again at all. Still, without Anya in her immediate sight, she instantly felt alone and she hoped that Caliban would lead them back towards the village quickly, she was not convinced of her ability of locating her way back alone.

So, Marie wiped the tears from her wet cheeks and took a few steadying breaths to calm herself. Just like the death of the warrior in the healer’s hut, Tris’ death had happened so silently.

When Marie entered the structure again, she remained frozen in the entrance for long moments, as her mind tried to process on what scene she had walked in on.

Clarke was kneeling in front of Caliban and was pressing his mouth closed. Marie could distinctly see blood running from a deep cut on the man’s throat.

“What have you done?” Marie asked in a screeching cry, once she had found her voice again and she looked at the older girl with widened eyes. Clarke had just signed her death warrant by killing Caliban. Even if Anya had seemed intent to let the girl live, now she would surely be executed alongside of Finn.

Clarke whirled around at the sudden shout and held the bloody scalpel up in a threating gesture. Her blue eyes showed the panic she was feeling and adrenaline rushed through her system. “I am not going to stay here, Marie, neither will you” Clarke said in a quivering tone and she lowered the scalpel, when she recognized Marie.

“You … you killed him” Marie accusingly stated with a pointed look at the body at Clarke’s feet. Her mind was still reeling and her breathing quickened with horror at what the older girl had done.

Clarke nodded and gave a watery smile to Marie “We can go home now, we just have to hurry before they return.” It was obvious that Clarke was convinced that she had successfully saved her own life by killing the grounder.

Marie had opened her mouth to tell the girl that no one was returning, when she thought better of it and closed it with a loud click. She had no intention of returning to the other delinquents. She wanted to be there when Tris’ body was burned and she would most definitely not stay with the other 100, her place was with Anya and in Trikru now.

“I am not held captive, Clarke” Marie tried to explain to the blonde girl, exasperation rising with every passing moment.

“You are not?” Clarke asked an octave higher and blue eyes widened in startled confusion “Why are you still there then?”

“Anya took me as her second. I can live with them now, Clarke. So can you...” Marie said lowly, hoping to convince the older girl, but she frowned and added “Or rather could before you killed him.”

Clarke just shook her head, keeping the scalpel clutched in her hand and she abruptly grasped onto Marie, pulling the child along as she rushed out of the structures, having a firm grip on the startled Marie.

“We don’t have the time to discuss this now. We need to get moving” Clarke told the girl while dragging her away. She was not certain of the direction, but hoped that she could figure that out later.

Marie tried to shrug Clarke’s grip off, knowing that the older girl was dragging her away from TonDC and every step she was forcefully pulled in that direction, pulled her nearer towards the other delinquents and with it a certain death and also further away from Anya. She kept up her struggle lightly, but soon she was more occupied with following Clarke quickly without stumbling over logs or holes in the ground. The older girl pulled her along without any real direction and whereas Marie was certain Anya would have known by heart on where to step, Clarke made the both of them stumble more often than not.

It was completely dark outside and she still had not gotten the hang of moving around the forest in total darkness and it was painfully obvious that Clarke was not faring any better. They were way too loud, if Clarke wanted to move undetected, but Marie was not going to point that out to the other girl. She internally hoped that they would run into some scouts soon. She had already heard enough of Anya's strategies to know that the woods around TonDC were heavily patrolled, but Marie was not certain how the war against the other delinquents and the blown-up bridge might influence the frequency of guards.

To Marie's internal consternation, they did not run into any scouts on their way and she already mused about how to slow down the older girl best. The fact that Clarke still had the scalpel clutched into her fist with desperate determination, stilled Marie's attempts to actively hinder her movements, she was honestly afraid that Clarke might suddenly lash out. Fortunately for her, Clarke triggered a booby trap a few moments later and both of them were dangling upside down from long ropes from trees after a frightening moment of the sensation of suddenly losing the ground beneath their feet.

Marie did not say anything, when Clarke desperately tried to get loose from the trap. They were hanging pretty high up and she knew from experience that a fall from that height would definitely hurt.

“Stop struggling” Marie finally snapped at the other girl after an undefined time. She was getting a headache from all the blood in her head and Clarke was getting on her nerves. She had noted that during the activation of the trap Clarke must have lost hold of the scalpel and the girl obviously did not have another knife with her. Marie did not bother to even try to use her own dagger to free herself, the ropes were thick and she was still convinced that the fall after cutting herself free would not be worth it.

“They will find us” Clarke shouted back with unmasked fear in her voice.

“I know” Marie calmly answered, she was counting on that fact otherwise they really would need to get down soon as the position was not comfortable at all. She did not know if there might be some sort of signal system which would alert a warrior on guard or scouting duty that one of their traps had been activated. She knew from Anya that the hunters usually tried to check their traps as often as possible, so that their prey would not have to suffer needlessly.

Fortunately, Anya found them only a short time later, accompanied by other warriors. The woman had started to worry when Caliban and Marie had not arrived at the estimated time. She had just lost one of her seconds and she already had had a strange feeling, leaving Marie alone to begin with.

Marie was unbelievably grateful, when Anya finally let her down again. She stumbled feeling dizzy when her feet touched the ground again and Anya caught her to prevent the girl from falling over. No one went to help Clarke get up from the ground after they had let her fall from some distance.

“Where is Caliban?” Anya demanded to know in a sharp tone, when Marie stopped blinking to clear her head.

Marie looked at Clarke accusingly “She killed him” she answered, leaning slightly closer to the woman and further from Clarke.

Anya snarled “Another warrior lost to the sky children. You will be put on a tree for your sins” her brown eyes had turned hard in their anger and her voice furious.

Clarke had no idea what that meant in particular, but she gathered that it would be a form of execution. Marie swallowed loudly, she had only heard from Tris what this punishment meant. People who got convicted for murder or treason were bound to a pole and killed by numerous cuts from the inhabitants of the village. She could imagine how such an execution would look like and she internally hoped that it would be a long time until she actually had to witness one.

“We head back to TonDC now” Anya declared to the others who had accompanied her. Marie noticed the masked warrior from before again in the group, most of them had shed their masks, but curiously he still wore his.

Anya kept a hand on Marie’s back and guided the girl a few meters away from the others. “What happened Marie?” Anya asked her young charge almost kindly. The girl had seemed too relived to see her again and the child still seemed pale and shocked.

“Clarke had already killed him when I got back. She still had the scalpel in her hand. And she wanted me to return back to the delinquents with her. I didn’t want to go with her…” Marie told the woman, the words rushing out of her mouth, as her agitation grew “I want to be at Tris’ pyre. I belong to you now…” a sheen of tears misted over her grey eyes now.

Anya did not know if the girl meant to belong to her in person or to Trikru now, but she was touched nevertheless. “I know” Anya easily reassured the girl and squeezed her shoulder “You will return to TonDC and stay there when the actual battle happens.”

Marie nodded and gave the woman a watery smile. She did not know why she felt so strongly about never wanting to return to the delinquents, but she just did.

The way towards TonDC had been uneventful so far. Clarke had ceased her struggling against the grounder who dragged her along against her will, probably recognizing that she would never manage to flee alive from so many trained warriors and Marie walked directly next to Anya.

Suddenly Anya halted Marie and protectively stood in front of the girl with her sword raised, while the other warriors had also drawn their weapons. Marie looked ahead into the darkness around them with a frown, trying hard to figure out what she had apparently missed.

A moment later a male warrior together with others appeared from the trees in front of them. “I am to lead your warriors into battle” he told Anya with an arrogant sneer.

Anya clenched her teeth “The commander ordered this, Tristan?” her rising irritation was almost palpable.

The man nodded arrogantly looking down on Anya. Marie could see the anger radiating from her mentor, but surprisingly the woman kept silent. Marie wondered why Anya had lost the command over her warriors, but she recognized that Anya would not question the commander’s orders at all. The woman had told her in one of her lessons that questioning Heda might be seen as treason, so she was cautioned against ever doing so.

“We march right now” Tristan announced to the warriors. Marie looked at Anya unsurely, the woman had only wanted to attack the next day.

“Take Marie back to TonDC and kill the prisoner” Anya ordered the masked warrior to do. She could not bring her second back herself, she would disregard a direct order if she did so, but she would still make sure that the girl would get back to safety.

The man just nodded and took Clarke on his horse in front of him and lent a hand to hoist Marie behind him.

Marie kept her eyes firmly on Anya, when they rode away from the other warriors. She could not put a finger on it, but separating again from the woman had felt wrong and she would have preferred to stay beside her, even if that would have meant to march with them against the other delinquents.

She cautiously put her hands on the warrior’s hip to stay in the saddle, they were riding a rather fast pace and she found it hard to hold herself in place.

They stopped shortly after and the warrior gently let her glide down from the horse and helped Clarke down as well.

The older girl directly began to plead the warrior to spare her life and let her go, when the man finally lifted his mask.

“Lincoln” Marie gasped shocked when she recognized the man and blinked at the man in confusion as he sent his horse away with a clap to the horse’s rear.

She gaped even more, when Finn appeared behind a tree trunk obviously alive and unharmed.

The wheels were turning fast in her brain and she glared at Lincoln. The only logical reason for Finn’s appearance was that Lincoln had disregarded Anya’s commands.

Clarke had thrown her arms around Finn and they were hugging each other.

“Quick. It won’t be long until the others figure out that I helped you escape” Lincoln told the two hugging teenagers with urgency in his tone. 

Marie shook her head not liking where this was obviously going. Why was everyone set on her returning to the delinquents?

“I don’t want to come with you” Marie declared stubbornly and crossed her arms over her chest defiantly, not moving an inch. Lincoln would just have to carry her, if they wanted her to move. She knew that the army would not take long to reach the others.

“You can come with us and be safe at the camp. We will move to another clan, you do not need to stay with them” Finn tried to persuade the younger girl in a soothing voice.

Marie just huffed at him “You don’t get it. I want to return to Anya!” her voice rose with each word and her grey eyes steeled over.

Lincoln looked unsure “I can’t guarantee for your safety if you stay here on your own.”

“I don’t care” Marie declared loudly. She just did not want to return with them. If the army had already moved to their camp, they would surely not care why she was there, they would just kill her with the other 100. She was not even sure if they would take the time and see who they killed. She would probably be killed alongside the others and Anya might learn of it afterwards.

“You can’t seriously want to leave her here alone. She is just a child” Clarke interjected and tried to put a hand on the younger girl’s shoulder which Marie promptly shook off.

“We will need to move through the reaper tunnels. If she does not come willingly and struggles, we won’t pass them undetected” Lincoln told Clarke with a grimace on his face.

“Do you know the way back to TonDC?” Lincoln asked Marie his voice laded with doubt.

Marie nodded as convincingly as possible. Lincoln nodded in return and told the others to follow him.

Of course, Marie had absolutely no idea how to get to TonDC, she was not even sure about the general direction the village lay in.

She went through the woods a lot more silently then Clarke had. So she truly now did understand why Anya told her that they were even unable to walk.

As Anya had taught her, she tried to keep watch of the stars to get an indication of the directions. She had no idea if she moved in the right direction and she lost any feeling for the time as well.

Marie had kept a firm hold on her dagger the whole way. She knew she would not be able to defend herself with the blade efficiently, she could only hope that she would not encounter a dangerous animal or a Reaper, but it at least gave her a sense of protection nevertheless.

She was startled when a warrior suddenly dropped from a tree directly in front of her.

Marie was lucky that it was a warrior who recognized the frightened girl immediately.

He looked the girl over checking her for injuries, but did not ask her what happened. The young man just guided her back to TonDC in fast strides and delivered her to the commander’s tent directly.

Lexa looked up from a map with a frown on her face, when she saw the girl being escorted into her tent in the middle of the night.

“What happened?” Lexa asked Marie still frowning and sent the warrior away with a simple wordless wave of her hand. She noted how shocked the child still appeared.

So, Marie repeated everything of what had transpired after they left the bridge to the commander.

At the mention of Lincoln, the woman’s green eyes narrowed angrily, but she let the girl finish without any interruption.

“The pyres are still being built; I will wake you when they are going to be lit” Lexa told the girl. Marie looked ready to be asleep on her feet and not wanting to send the girl alone into the empty tent, she just silently guided the girl to her own furs and ordered her to lie down. She was not going to sleep in the next hours anyway.

 

 

Chapter 24

Lexa remained inside her tent, waiting almost anxiously for the first of her scouts to return to TonDC and report the progress of the army. She had sent enough with the army that she would be receiving regular updates. Something already told her that the Sky children still had an ace hidden and she hoped that her army’s tactics would be enough to extinguish the Sky children, without her own people suffering too much losses. She kept watch over the young sleeping girl from the corner of her eyes. The girl was restless in her sleep, features troubled and twisting beneath the furs regularly. So, it did not come as a huge surprise to Lexa when Marie’s sleep started to be disturbed with nightmares. She tried to reassure the girl that she was safe and back in TonDC to the best of her abilities and convinced the child to try to get more sleep afterwards. It was obvious that the comfort she offered to Marie, was doing very little to ease the child’s fears and Lexa strongly assumed that she only tried to continue to sleep because she was even more afraid to openly disregard a direct order from herself.

A warrior entered her tent some time later, proclaiming lowly that the preparations for the pyres had been finished. She sent him away with a mute gesture. The people of TonDC would wait for her arrival before setting the souls of their fallen comrades free. Silently Lexa want behind the curtain to her sleeping area and shook the sleeping girl’s shoulder, trying to rouse her gently.

Marie awoke almost instantly at her touch, gasping in obvious fright and staring up at the commander with wide grey eyes.

The child’s breathing was visibly irregular, but Lexa ignored her reaction “The pyres will be lit soon” she told the girl in an even tone, offering a hand to Marie to help her from the bed.

Marie regarded the commander’s hand for a silent moment, before she hesitantly let the woman help her, she inclined her head in acknowledgment that she had understand. She swallowed deeply and her expression turned sad with the knowledge that Tris would be among those to be burnt.

Lexa saw the girl’s downcast expression and addressed her in a serious tone “Tris died well. She fell in battle, Marie. Death is a constant shadow of all warriors, but death is not the end.” She knew that her words were solemn, but the girl would recognize their truth soon enough.

Marie only nodded in silence, unable to give voice to her feelings, there were far too many at the moment and she was fairly certain that the commander would not be interested in them as well.

“It is alright to mourn someone. But the dead are gone.” Lexa lectured the young girl in a gentle tone. She knew that accepting a loved one’s death was not easy for a young warrior, but the girl would either harden against the pain or break. Lexa squeezed the girl’s shoulder reassuringly and went behind the curtain again, waiting for the girl in the larger part of the tent.

Marie had to gather herself a few moments, before she could join the commander. Tears were already gathering in her eyes and she had to take some deep breath to swallow them down.

The commander was listening to a report from a scout that had shadowed the army marching on the crash site, when Marie joined them. The army had arrived at the crash site and the Sky children were wasting their bullets falling for their strategies, immediately shooting into shadows only. He had left when they wanted to move closer to their metal fence.

Marie let out a deep breath, she had not been aware holding. It sounded as if the army could not had suffered many losses this way, which was a good thing for her as it meant that Anya was most likely well and unharmed. She felt slightly better with the knowledge that the army had not lost their fight. She mutely followed the commander out of the tent to the pyres, when the woman motioned her to. Marie could directly spot Tris’ smaller body on one of them and she had to swallow against the lump forming in her throat. Tris’ body looked so much smaller, covered by a bright kind of fabric and it only emphasised just how young the older girl had been in comparison to most of the other warriors who had lost their lives as well.

It looked as if everyone who was left behind in TonDC was now standing together at the pyres. Marie barely listened to the commander saying a few words, before she lighted the pyres with a torch. Absentmindedly, she sensed when the commander returned to her side once all the pyres were burning. Marie watched the pyres burn through a veil of tears silently falling from her eyes.

In total, twelve warriors had died so far from the explosion of the bridge. Lexa had been informed that three more were still fighting for their lives against severe injuries and without a proper healer present at the village, no one was sure if they would make it. Ten additional warriors had been wounded, but luckily just sustained little damage and were all expected to make a full recovery.

Time flowed by without Marie noticing and when the commander touched her shoulder an infinite time later, she blinked a few times before her mind caught on with the fact that the pyres had already burnt down to glowing embers. She did not understand, how she had not even consciously realized that, but most people had already left to turn in for the rest of the night.

“Come” Lexa ordered in a calm tone to the obviously dazed girl. She had occasionally looked over to the girl, to see her stare at the pyres with tears streaming down her face completely unblinking.

The girl was in absolutely no condition, to be left on her own at the moment, so Lexa would just let her sleep with her in her own tent for the night. Hopefully, Anya and the army would have returned victoriously by morning of the next day.

Gustus frowned at Lexa, leading the girl back to the commander’s tent and lowly offered to let the girl share his tent for the night. He did not particularly care for the girl, but he thought that it was absolutely inappropriate for Heda to look after the girl this much and in his opinion letting her sleep in the commander’s tent was unacceptable, but Lexa refused him of course. She had set her mind on it and she rarely let herself be swayed, once she had made a decision and Gustus being her personal guard for the last years knew that of course. He still only begrudgingly accepted her denial, he had even tried to reason with the commander, that the girl could also sleep with some other younger seconds in a tent, she would be safe there as well, but Lexa would hear none of it and had shot him down decisively. She had personally promised her former mentor to look after the girl in her absence and she would keep her word.

On the arrival in the huge tent, Lexa forced some food and a mug with wine into Marie’s hands. The girl had probably not eaten anything in some hours and looked ready to faint any moment. The night would end soon, but Lexa had neglected to convince the girl to eat beforehand and the child was already much too thin to miss any more meals.

Marie wanted to argue with the commander, feeling rather sick already, but after a stern look from Lexa and seeing the woman eating and drinking a bit herself, Marie did eat something and downed the wine in one go. Fortunately, the wine had been rather strong and made her feel slightly drowsy pretty quickly and Lexa directed her to a set of extra furs a maid had put there for Marie.

The girl fell asleep immediately as her head touched her pillow as the events of the day finally caught up with her. Lexa hoped that the wine would also help the girl sleep through most of the night. The child must have truly been exhausted as she was now lying under the furs with blank features and had not moved an inch in several minutes.

Luckily for both of them, the girl truly slept heavy without the interruption of nightmares until a loud commotion woke both of them up again some time later. Lexa had actually just napped for a bit, not even bothering to change out of her armour at all, anticipating the return of several scouts to come and report through the night.

It truly was a scout that had come to her tent and Lexa lightly glared at him for causing so much noise. She directly went to hear his report, whereas Marie sat up in the furs blinking owlishly to stop her head from spinning.

The girl strained her ears to listen on in the report and what she could hear made her heart miss a beat. The scout had reported that first reapers had interfered with the battle and then the Sky children had barricaded themselves inside their metal thing. Apparently, Anya had managed to slip into the metal thing, before it had been closed and flames had erupted from the thing which had immediately burnt all of the warriors who had still been outside. Marie breathed in a shocked mouth of air, feeling a painful flash of compassion for all those warriors who must have died in the flames, but she internally held onto the hope that Anya had escaped the flames. She desperately hoped that the other delinquent would not have killed her.

Marie felt the blood turn to ice in her veins when she heard the last part of his report.

The scout had fled when the fire started and returned sometime later to find the metal thing empty. All the Sky children as well as Anya were gone.

Lexa had listened to his report in serene silence to this point, but when the man did not offer anything else, she thundered loudly at him “But they cannot be just gone!” The Sky children could not have possibly evaporated into thin air after all and it was obvious that they were not skilled enough to flee without leaving any trail behind.

The scout tried to explain, that he had not been able to find any real tracks. The only thing he had found, were strange metal things left behind and tracks obviously left behind by human beings leading in the direction of the Mountain.

Lexa dismissed the scout in a strangled voice, but could not do anything as one of Indra’s scouts who had had an eye on movements from the Mountain wanted to make his report as well.

Marie again listened on and learned that Mountain Men had been seen leaving the Mountain and more people then had left, had returned later in the night. The scouts had not been able to get close enough without being detected to recognize who had entered the Mountain, but Lexa just dismissed this scout as well.

The commander was sitting on her throne, face hidden by her hands, when Marie emerged from the other side of the tent padding barefoot over the tent’s floor. She looked up at the girl immediately, expression blank and tightly controlled.

“Anya is inside the Mountain, isn’t she?” the girl asked barely above a whisper with horror edged firmly into her pale features.

Lexa contemplated the girl in silence for a moment, taking in her small form, pale features and how lost the girl looked, standing in front of her and looking expectantly at her, as if she had the might to make Anya appear with them somehow, before she nodded with a grave expression, swallowing harshly against the lump forming in her own throat. They had obviously gravely underestimated these Sky children when they had been able to lay siege to an army of 300 warriors outnumbering them greatly. All of them had known that the explosion of the bridge would have surely caught the Mountain Men’s attention, so it did not come as a surprise to Lexa, that they finally had made their appearance.

Marie’s thoughts were racing wildly in her head. She just knew one thing for certain. Anya had once told her, that no one who had entered the Mountain had ever been seen again. So, if the Mountain Men really had Anya, she was probably dead already. The other alternative would be that the woman had died in the fire around the drop ship, as the rest of the army seemingly had. The girl had no idea which fate would have been worse. At least the fire sounded like a quick death. Who knew what the Mountain Men actually did to the people they had captured? And she had just lost her mentor, so what was going to happen to her now? Would she be discarded as she had when she was without her parents on the Ark?

“What happens to me now?” the girl chocked out in a broken whisper, after a few moments of tense silence.

Lexa regarded the girl silently for a moment. It was not unusual for a former second to take over the current seconds of the first after the demise of the first. Even Lexa had to accept that Anya’s fight seemed to be over. She had given a promise to the older woman to look after Marie for her should something happen to her in the battle and she would honour that promise.

Gustus and Titus would surely throw a fit, when they heard of her decision. She had only once taken a second in her time as commander. Naively she had thought that as commander she would of course be superior in everything, so surely her second would have been the best as well. She had taken on a young boy from Trikru at the age of six. After two years of her tutelage, they were deep into war with Ice Nation. And Lexa had believed that her second would need to prove her superiority by marching at the front of the battle with her. Barely a few minutes into the battle the boy had been wounded fatally and Lexa had to recognize that she had gravely overestimated the boy’s and her own skills this day. The boy had payed with his life for her error and she had never taken a second again after that day.

But before Lexa actually had the chance to give a verbal answer to the girl’s question, Gustus burst into the tent demanding the commander to follow outside at once.

Lexa quirked an eyebrow at her guard’s strange demanding behaviour, but let it slide for now and stood from her throne, joining Gustus outside immediately. The sight outside let her mouth drop open. Another thing was falling from the sky and it looked much bigger than the last metal box which had fallen from the sky a few nights ago.

This time the ship did not explode when it landed on the earth, so Lexa concluded that the passengers of this ship would have probably survived or at least had a chance of survival.

Marie had followed behind the commander to the entrance of the tent hesitantly and had also seen the falling ship in the sky. So, the last ship had not been the whole Ark after all. Her eyes fell to the place where the pyres had burned last night and the realisation hit her, that there would be no pyres for the fallen army as they had already burned and there would be no pyre for Anya, as they did not have a body to burn. A little bit of hope silently blossomed in her chest, that Anya might still be alive somewhere without prove of her body.

One of the warriors who had just moved on from being a second himself, sneered at the girl with murder written all over his face. “They have burned our warriors alive” he raged and made to actually attack the girl with his sword raised.

Lexa stepped in with one of her own swords hastily drawn and metal clashed loudly against each other. She had the man fallen and her swords tip pressed to his throat in seconds, seemingly without any effort.

“Marie is not Skykru any longer. She will officially be introduced as my second into Trikru soon enough” Lexa loudly proclaimed and looked around the gathered warriors with hard eyes. The commander knew that none of them would dare move against the girl now, but they still would have to keep an eye out for those seeking revenge in the dead of the night.

Indra looked rather perplexed at the girl, while Gustus looked at Lexa as if she had just proclaimed the sky to be purple.

Marie herself was replaying the words in her mind over and over again, trying to make sense of them somehow. She had feared that she would be banished from the village and now the commander would take her over as her second? Her mind seemed incapable to process this unexpected development.

Without another word, the commander turned around and went back into her tent, motioning Marie to follow her as well. Gustus and Indra also followed inside and both had their eyes fixed on Lexa. Both of their faces showed a mixture out of startled confusion and disapproval.

When Indra made to speak, Lexa silenced her with a simple gesture “Whatever you want to say will not persuade me to change my mind, Indra. I have made a promise to Anya to look over Marie and I will honour that promise. If I were not the commander, you would not think anything about me taking her over as a second.”

Indra snapped her jaw shut and nodded begrudgingly. She was more than aware that testing the commander’s patience now was not a good idea.

“But you are Heda, Lexa. Trikru might accept that, but what about the other clans?” Gustus questioned with concern for Lexa’s life evident on his face.

“I will deal with them” Lexa simply answered, green eyes turning hard with determination. The other clans had agreed to subordinate themselves to her rule and as her subjects, she would not accept their disapproval of her second. “Return to your duties” she dismissed both of them in a clipped tone, not in the mood to be questioned even further.

Both nodded and Gustus mutely returned to guard the entrance of the tent and Indra to organize more scouting teams towards the new fallen metal thing.

“What are my duties now?” Marie asked uncertainly, standing in front of the throne and fiddling with the hem of her shirt in obvious nervousness.

“I did not mean you now Marie” Lexa reassured the girl who still seemed rather tired, trying to gentle her tone slightly “You should rest for a few more hours. We will discuss everything concerning your new role later.”

The girl nodded with a serene expression and obediently returned to the additional furs in the other section of the tent. Internally, Marie was still occupied with worrying about what the change would now mean to her. She could not stop thinking about Anya and desperately wished that the woman would still return to TonDC miraculously.

 

 

Chapter 25

It had taken Marie a long time to fall asleep, her mind had just not wanted to quiet down. She could not forget the way Tris had looked as she crumbled in front of the blown-up bridge, her brown eyes wide and shocked. The image of the older girl’s chest suddenly stopping its regular movements and remaining still, as Tris had died, haunted her in her sleep. Although she had not been present when the army had been burned alive, her imagination was still enough to make up what it must have looked like. She remembered keenly how Anya and Tris had prepared themselves for the battle, dressing in armour and applying dark paint to their faces. She desperately wished to be able to travel back in time, preventing the army from marching against the other delinquents at all. But she knew that such a thing was impossible and only part of old science fiction books.  She drifted off into an exhausted sleep some time later, haunted by Anya’s face as they had separated in the woods.

It took Lexa a rather long time to listen to all the reports of the different scouting teams and she felt drawn and tired, when she was finally able to turn in as well. While listening to the different reports, she had still tried to listen if the young girl sleeping beside her own bed, was having nightmares again, she had been rather surprised that the girl had slept so long already. On the other hand, the day had been exhausting and eventful for both of them and the child still did not make a healthy impression, her body probably still weakened from her severe illness. Beside listening to various reports, she had already organised different scouts to keep an eye on the crash site of the Sky children and sent more warriors to investigate the newly fallen ship.

She had already discarded her sword, shoulder pauldron and red sash, as she pushed the curtain to the site and observed the young girl for a moment. Fortunately, the child was asleep still but even in the dim light, Lexa could clearly see her features being troubled. She could fathom that the girl would find it difficult to adapt to the sudden changes. It seemed that Marie had formed a rather deep instinctual bond to her general and Lexa knew that the girl would grief her loss.

She tried to undress as silently as possible, placing her clothing neatly folded beneath her bed and her dagger beneath her pillow. Lexa knew that it would take her some time to get used to having such a young and inexperienced second. Her previous might have been younger in years, but the boy could not be fairly compared to Marie. She had seen first-hand that even Anya had been a lot gentler with the girl than she had been with Tris or Lexa before.

It had been some time ago that Lexa had to share her personal space with anyone and she regarded the girl to be too inexperienced and too easy of a target to let her have her own tent at the moment. She internally hoped that through sharing a tent, they would grow closer together more quickly, the girl had been reversed towards her so far and had obviously been wary of her.

She lied down in her bed, facing the girl and looking over to her. The small body was wrapped tightly into the thick furs and the girl’s features looked anything but peaceful. She would have liked to offer her some words of comfort, but Lexa thought it better to let her sleep as long as possible. She drifted of to the soft sounds of the child’s breathing only shortly later, forcing her thoughts to remain quiet and not even start to wander. She would have enough time to contemplate what had happened in the morning.

For Lexa it felt as if barely an hour had passed, before she was woken by the girl’s nearly silent weeping. Lexa had always been a light sleeper and as the commander, she always had to be on high alert for a possible assassination attempt, if she was not in her well-guarded quarters in the tower of Polis.

Marie had woken from a nightmare a few minutes ago, her heart racing and the image of Anya burning in front of the Drop Ship fresh on her mind. She had been disoriented when she woke and in the very first moment, when she had heard someone else’s breathing, she had felt relief course through her mind, thinking that everything had just been a dream and she was in her tent with Anya. But as soon as she had opened her eyes, she felt her heart shatter anew. She recognized the commander’s tent and the memories had flooded back into her mind all at once, now she was desperately trying to be as silent as possible, as hot tears ran down her cheeks. She was still feeling wary of Lexa’s knew role for her and the fact that the woman was the commander was intimidating her even more. Marie could not help wishing for Anya to be here instead right now, she had felt an instant connection to the older woman. It was not that Lexa had been unkind to her, but she was not connected personally to the commander.

When Marie saw that she must have woken the commander up, as the woman grabbed for something beneath her pillow, frame tense for a moment until she sat up, the girl stiffened in fright and tried to stifle her sniffling instantly.

Lexa could spot the girl’s struggling immediately, when she stood up to see what was wrong with her charge, she doubted that the girl would quiet down on her own and she did not wish to let her suffer alone through her grief. A sudden image of Anya offering her comfort through the long nights of her own all-encompassing grief flashed up in her mind, but Lexa pushed it from her thoughts forcefully. “A nightmare?” she inquired keeping her voice as soft as possible on purpose. It did not sit well with her, how the girl was peering up at her with wide grey eyes, body tense and biting at her lips to contain her sobs.

Marie looked up at the commander for long moments, trying to assess if the woman was angry, before she nodded mutely in agreement with tears still rolling down her cheeks silently.

Lexa crouched down next to the girl who had set up in her furs “You are missing Anya, aren’t you?” she questioned softly and looked at the girl with compassionate eyes. She had obviously guessed correctly, as the girl’s lips started to quiver immediately in reaction and she cried in earnest now, loud sobs bubbling from her mouth. Lexa squeezed the girl’s shoulder to offer some comfort in silent solitude. She knew only too well, that there was nothing she could say to truly ease the girl’s grief.

Marie could only look at the woman in silent mourning and in this moment, she did not care that she was facing the commander, but only that the woman had promised to now be her first and she instinctively launched herself at Lexa and slung her arms around the woman’s neck strongly, simply needing to feel the comfort of another’s embrace, trying to sooth the grief clawing at her mind painfully.

Lexa had to balance herself against the offhand weight of the girl as to not get knocked over, she had simply not expected the girl’s reaction. After a few moments she awkwardly wound her arms around the smaller body and petted her long blonde hair and back soothingly. She felt truly out of her element, she had never been required to console someone like this and it had been several years ago that she had allowed someone close enough to her for an embrace.

Lexa had little to no experience with grieving children. Her only experience with children coming from her deceased second and the nightblood children in Polis, which were trained there as her possible successor. But she had never truly been close to the boy and her second had been too proud to be chosen for this position to express his feelings openly in front of her and she had never seen the boy shed a single tear in the two years she had regularly seen him. The nightblood children rarely cried as well the less so in front of her. Only the younger ones usually ever cried on their first days in Polis, when they missed their families the most and the memories were still fresh on their minds. Training and lessons with Titus diverted their attention quickly and she rarely had to comfort any of them. She knew from personal experience how quick the flamekeeper was in instilling proper etiquette to his pupils and warding off their visible emotions was one of his first lessons.

“It is alright” Lexa tried to sooth the crying girl, continuing to caress he back reassuringly. She could feel the girl shaking in her arms from the sobs wreaking her smaller body “Ssshh”.

Lexa kept on whispering non-sense reassurances into the girl’s ears for a rather long time, while she felt the front of her shirt gradually being soaked with Marie’s tears. She was glad now, that she had decided to let the girl stay in her tent or the child would have been completely on her own with her grief. She was also certain that Gustus would not have offered the girl any comfort either. Although she knew him to have a softer heart than his appearance would led to believe, Gustus still thought that letting the girl live was a mistake and it would have only cemented his belief.

When Marie had finally calmed down to occasional sniffles, the girl pulled away quickly from Lexa her face flaming red in shame. “I am so sorry” the girl tried to excuse herself in a quivering voice and panic flashed through her puffy eyes minutely.

“No harm done, Marie” Lexa reassured the younger girl with a gentle smile and brushed the girl’s blonde hair away from her face. Although she did not show an outward reaction, Lexa still noted with a flash of irritation how the child almost instinctively tried to inch away from her hand, as if she was afraid that she would strike her. It may be important for Marie to have a certain amount of respect towards her as the commander, Lexa still felt slightly affronted at the girl’s irrational reaction. She had not given her any reason to fear her, she may be harsh, but she would certainly not hurt the girl without reason.

She sighed under her breath, hoping that the girl would get used to her quickly. “Do you think you can sleep for some more?” Lexa asked Marie in a calm tone.

Marie’s first reaction would have been to shake her head in resolute denial, but she saw how tired the woman actually looked and nodded in silent agreement, although she was sure she would never fall back asleep again.

The commander had early on developed the talent to spot if a person was speaking the truce. This talent had served her well as the commander so far and she immediately saw that the girl had just lied as well. “I am pretty certain Anya also had wanted you to speak only the truce to her. The same is true for me” Lexa spoke in a firmer tone to the girl “So let’s try again. Do you think you can sleep some more?”

Marie looked at the commander with wide eyes and answered in a subdued voice “I am sorry. You look tired…”

When the girl trailed off looking to the floor and averting her eyes, Lexa at least concluded that the girl had been trying to be considerate and had not lied simply to spite her. The girl was correct in her assertion though, she was still feeling exhausted and the morning was only a few short hours away.

As Anya had told her, that the closeness of her body had calmed the girl during the thunderstorm, Lexa thought to try a similar solution. She knew that she did not have the same measure of trust from Marie as Anya obviously had, but she was certain that they would grow closer with time. The other option would be letting the girl spend some time on her own in the camp, which Lexa did not regard as a good option in the night with so many grieving warriors.

“I understand Marie. We could lie down together, maybe you can sleep some more that way as well” Lexa offered in a soft tone. She was completely out of her abilities here as well. She was well versed in the art of fighting and balancing politics, but taking care of a child most of the time was new terrain to her as well.

Marie nodded with an uncertain expression and hesitantly laid down next to Lexa on the commander’s bed. She carefully kept a good amount of distance between their bodies, she was confused why the woman had allowed her to join her at all and she did not wish to anger the leader even more.

Lexa fell asleep rather quickly, while Marie was tense and unsure for longer. She could not deny the appeal of Lexa’s body emitting a reassuring warmth and she had felt safe within her arms. With a slightly quicker breath, Marie slowly crawled closer to the woman, snuggling up to her, her grey eyes flitting up to the woman, when she felt her tense. She wanted to pull back already, afraid that the woman had not wanted her to get this close, when the commander snaked an arm around her, pulling her even closer and remained like that, not even opening her eyes.

Lexa had to stifle a laugh as she pictured Titus’ reaction to finding the mighty commander as a pillow to a young Sky girl. But she did fall asleep with the smaller body snuggled up to her and both managed to catch some more much needed rest, before the sun rose and Lexa had to rise as well.

The morning was luckily not as awkward as Marie had feared. The commander did not mention her nightly breakdown at all for which Marie was grateful. She was surprised how quickly different people came to see the commander, as if someone had proclaimed that Lexa was awake now.

Alira came to bring the commander breakfast and help her to re-braid her hair after the night. Lexa was of course able to do so on her own, but it was faster to have someone else do it.

The woman smiled at Marie kindly, who stood awkwardly to the side when she entered. Gustus also entered the tent to rely a message from one of the scouting teams. The man just shortly glanced at Marie while the girl tried to be as silent and unobtrusive as possible. Lexa had not told her yet what she was expected to do and she thought it safer to remain in the background.

“Heda, the scouts have seen Skykru soldiers moving to the Sky children’s ship. They were all armed with guns, but the scouts have not been spotted by them” Gustus told Lexa, relaying the message from a scouting team.

Marie’s skill of Trigedasleng was improving rapidly, now that she was exposed to the language so often and she was able to understand most of Gustus’ words without translations.

Lexa nodded with a hint of satisfaction “I want the scouts to remain undetected for now. We need to know their numbers and movements, before we do anything. I also want you to send riders to the neighbouring clans to order for reinforcement” she added. They had obviously underestimated the Sky children, she would not repeat this error by marching only the Trikru army, or what remained of it, against the rest of Skykru.

Gustus nodded wordlessly and left again to directly carry out the commander’s orders.

“Eat something” Lexa ordered Marie suddenly, startling her in the process, but she had not forgotten about the girl. Lexa saw that the girl’s braids had come undone during the night as well “Are you able to braid your hair on your own?” she inquired as she took some breakfast for herself.

Marie took a bite from a piece of bread and shook her head “Not yet.” Anya had promised to teach her how to do and Marie noted sadly that this would never happen now.

Lexa nodded and when Alira had finished the commander’s braids, she asked the woman to also do the girl’s hair for now. Alira quickly put a simple design into the girl’s blonde hair that kept her long hair out of her face. Marie cautiously ran her fingers over the braids, trying to inspect them, when they were finished. There was no mirror she could see, so that would have to do for her imagination.

Alira left them to their breakfast shortly after and both ate in companionable silence. Lexa had never been one who had the urge to fill every second with mindless chatter, rather enjoying the few peaceful moments throughout the day she could get.

Marie had no idea what to say either and her mind was still occupied with her grief.

As Lexa did not have any pressing matters to attend to in the morning, she had time to start training her new second in combat, before the first scouts were expected back with their report on the movements the Sky people had made.

So, after the breakfast Lexa ordered Marie to change into the light armour the girl owned and to follow her outside. Lexa had no desire to start training the girl in the fighting pits of TonDC, as she was bound to gather a crowd of on-lookers pretty quickly. She had the pressing foreboding that the girl’s performance would be greatly influenced by her grief and the girl was skittish enough around her.

So, Marie followed Gustus and the commander into the woods surrounding TonDC in silence. The walk was relatively short and they stopped in a small clearing covered in soft green grass and a few flowers.

Gustus went to stand at the border of the clearing, when Lexa called him back. The commander handed a wooden staff to Marie “Try to attack Gustus, Marie” she ordered in a firm tone.

The girl gaped at the older woman for a moment in obvious surprise, before she hesitantly took the offered staff from the commander’s hands. The staff she was given, was relatively thick and Marie thought it might be slightly too long for her. It was definitely heavier then it looked like and it felt weird in her hands. “But I can’t just hit him” Marie replied with an unsure expression, moving the staff in her hand slightly.

The bulky man rolled his eyes at the girl’s reaction, but remained silent while Lexa pursed her lips with a look clearly telling Marie to better get started.

Her first hit was more a joke of a hit than anything else. Marie barely put any strength into her attack, unwilling to possibly hurt the man in front of her and honestly afraid of what he would do, if she actually succeeded in hitting him. What Marie had not expected, was that Gustus used her attack to get a grip of the staff and throw her over with it in just a blink. Astonished the girl was blinking her eyes, trying to breathe again after the unexpected impact on the ground. 

Lexa was glaring slightly at the girl, not being impressed by her lack of will at all “Stand up!” she barked at her, feeling impatience rising in her mind.

Marie scrambled to her feet quickly to comply with the sharp order and was handed the staff back from Gustus.

“Try again!” Lexa ordered in a calmer voice and watched the girl’s movements. The child was blatantly betraying the region she wanted to attack before her actual attack.

It took Marie several tries to even come remotely close to hitting Gustus at all and she ended the training with forming bruises under her armour and a bleeding split lip.

Lexa pinched the bridge of her nose in annoyance, after having witnessed the girl’s talent with a dagger, she had actually expected a better performance. “We have a long way to go…” she commented darkly.

 

 

Chapter 26

The next few days passed in a similar manner, as Lexa tried to work out a routine for her new second, hoping to get her used to her new role quickly.

Marie was still sharing a tent with Lexa and ended up snuggled to the commander on most nights after only a few hours of peaceful sleep. Lexa found it almost comical, how the girl sought her out for comfort in the night and was clearly still hesitant and unsure around her in the light of day. The commander had absolutely no idea on how to get the girl to trust her and she could only hope that it would get easier between them with time.

What made Lexa worry the most about the girl, was the extent of her grief. Marie was still doing her training and followed the orders she was given to the point, but there was clearly something off with the girl. The girl was barely making any progress in their training and the lack of it was only increasing her impatience with the child. She had not once shown a desire to visit the horses, that she obviously admired greatly. If Lexa did not keep the girl occupied with one mindless task after the other, she would see her just standing somewhere, staring into nothing with a forlorn expression. She had also not seen the girl smile since Anya’s disappearance, not even the hint of one.

Tension with Skykru were running high on the other hand and worsening with every passing moment. An increasing number of them had been trespassing armed with guns on her lands. Her scouts had the strict order to remain unseen as much as possible. But there had been some minor losses nevertheless. She had been informed that one scouting team had actually crucified three Sky guards on patrol. Lexa was aware that something would need to be done against them and the sooner the better, but she was waiting for the reinforcement of the other clans to arrive. She would not sacrifice any more of the Trikru warriors before her army had reached its full strength.

It had now been seven days since her warriors had been burned at the Sky children’s crash site. She had sent out riders to the other clans to announce that a bounty had been put on all Skykru. Late in the night a bounty hunter had brought a lone Skykru man to TonDC, claiming to have found the man in the Dead Zone. Lexa had no idea how he might have gotten there, but she would deal with him later. He had been put into a holding cell in TonDC and she was convinced that letting him wait there for some time would only increase his likelihood of actually saying something voluntarily.

Right now, Lexa was watching Gustus trying to train with Marie again. Unfortunately, the emphasis lay in the word trying. Lexa shook her head in frustration. It had been a week now and the girl did not even show the slightest improvement. Her movements were sloppy and there was no force behind any of her attacks. If Lexa did not know any better and was practically ordering her to eat, she would suspect the child to be sick and in the process of slowly wasting away. Lexa knew that they had trained often enough with the girl, that she could have improved already, but she obviously wasn’t into the training anymore. She had seen how the girl’s body was covered in an increasing number of bruises with each passing training session, but Marie was not increasing her effort to defend herself, apparently preferring to suffer in silence instead.

“Enough, Gustus” Lexa called over and the man immediately lowered the staff he had been training the girl with. Lexa would have liked the girl to have improved to a point by now that they could move to real weapons, but with the lack of improvements she would never get to the point to hand over a sword to the girl without having to worry that the girl would accidentally kill herself.

“Return to the village” the commander ordered Gustus with a tone, that left no room for argument.

Marie blinked at the woman in honest confusion, up to this point she had only trained directly with Gustus and Lexa had stood beside it, watching and criticising her. She was unsure what exactly she had done wrong now, but she had learned enough of the commander by now to know, that she had angered her.

Gustus nodded, albeit reluctantly and left the small meadow they had been training on handing the staff over to Lexa on his way. He had already told the commander, that he regarded the girl as completely unfit to ever become a warrior the prior night.

If the girl really had no will to become a warrior, Lexa would not continue to waste her time with the child. There were enough professions the girl could apprentice for after all.

“Attack again” Lexa ordered Marie in a stern voice, getting into a defensive stance and waiting for the girl to follow her order.

Marie looked truly startled for a moment. Up to this point, she had always only had to attack Gustus and never the commander herself. But she could see the commander’s jaw tightening in rising annoyance at her hesitation and she tried to attack the woman.

Lexa easily deflected the flimsy attack with her staff and asked in a taunting voice “Is that all you can do?”

Marie tried again, but Lexa found the attack similar to her first try without any real effort behind it. If Lexa had wanted, she could have just easily ripped the staff from the girl’s hands, she seemed to barely hold onto it with any strength.

Lexa gritted her teeth angrily, she had seen a little flash of something flash through the girl’s grey eyes after her previous question. She steeled herself, hoping that angering the girl would get a rise out of her and changed her tactic. “Again” Lexa ordered in a bored voice, twirling the staff between her hands in practised movements, which would surely intimidate the girl even more.

After Marie’s attack, Lexa this time countered the strike with one of her own, hitting the girl in the left side. She took great care in measuring the force of her attack as to not seriously injure the girl, but it would almost certainly leave a bruise. The girl appeared startled to be physically hit for a second. but straightened up moments later.

“Again” Lexa issued the same order again and again. Each time the girl’s attacks were nothing but flimsy and Lexa only commented with a scathing “pathetic” and a counterattack of her own. She was sure, the girl would be bruised and stiff in the morning, but Marie did not show an emotional reaction at all, which only increased the commander’s worry.

With her last attack Lexa swept the girl’s legs out under her so that she fell onto her back on the ground with a thud. Lexa towered over Marie’s form in the grass and pressed the staffs end onto the girl’s chest “That was the most pathetic attack I have ever seen. Every five-year-old can do better than that.”

Marie’s eyes blazed angrily a second, before they visibly dimmed over again.

But Lexa had seen the short spark and so kept on hissing her tirade to the poor girl “You will be a disgrace to me, if you continue with this lame effort. How do you suppose to survive even the first attack in a battle? You would lay slain after only a few seconds!”

Marie’s eyes filled with angry tears and she forcefully pushed Lexa’s staff from her chest, getting up quickly from the grass to face the commander “I don’t, alright? I know that I would fall. I will never learn!” The girl’s exclamations were nearly screamed at Lexa with frustrated tears glittering in her grey eyes.

The commander let her staff sweep the girl’s legs under her again for her insolence and took out one of her swords. “Then let me put an end to you now” Lexa offered the girl in a deadly serious voice and hard green eyes.

Lexa brought down her sword in the direction of Marie’s throat in a quick movement. In the last second before Lexa wanted to end her attack as to not behead the girl, Marie suddenly brought up her staff deflecting the sword away from her throat with a resonating clanging sound.

The commander could see the girl’s grey eyes glittering angrily at her, but she had her where she wanted her and now, they could finally begin to train in earnest. “Attack again” Lexa ordered still deadly serious after putting her sword away again. The shock of near death had finally been enough to snap the girl out of her pathetic state and Lexa was grateful that the child was showing some emotions again.

Marie really did attack now with a new-found ferocity. Of course, she was no match to Lexa’s skill and the commander still easily deflected each and every blow from her, but the girl kept on trying now without being told to.

When the girl was panting heavily and still tried to get a single hit in long moments later, Lexa disarmed her with a well-placed hit against her fingers holding the staff and the girl let the staff drop with a pained hiss.

“Enough” Lexa said with satisfaction in her voice and nodded at the girl in silent acknowledgement for her efforts. She stepped up close to her and took her chin in a strong grip, forcing her to meet her eyes “No one will force you to become a warrior. Either you want to, or you don’t. But if you choose the path of a warrior, you will have to put all your energy into it. Never underestimate yourself. You give up way too easily. Get smacked down, get back up!”

Marie nodded with wide eyes clearly impressed with the commander’s skill and she seemed to contemplate the woman’s words.

“Think about the choice if you want to become a warrior, or not” Lexa told the girl when she let go of her chin. She would not expect an answer right away, but it would surely not do to fore the girl to become a warrior, if she was not into it.

Marie nodded again biting her lips for a second, before she softly asked her eyes clouded with doubt “Do you really think I have the abilities to become one?”

Lexa fixed the girl with her green eyes in an unwavering glare “I would not waste my time with you otherwise. Anya also thought so.” The general had told her that she believed the girl to possess great potential and although Marie obviously was lacking in almost all basic skills, the girl was still young enough to learn them.

The girl exhaled loudly and nodded again in acknowledgement. The doubts were still visibly flashing through her eyes and she was still biting at her lips.

“No one expects you to suddenly become a fully trained warrior overnight. This training takes months, if not years. But if you are not into it with your whole heart, you will never succeed” the commander spoke with putting emphasis on her last sentence.

Marie nodded again, but Lexa was satisfied to see new determination burning in the girl’s eyes.

“Actually, this was one of the first lessons Anya drilled into me after I became her second” Lexa recalled with a thoughtful expression. No one had believed that the youngest and scrawniest nightblood in the bunch could rise up to become commander. Only Anya had believed in her from the first second, so she knew the importance of that particular lesson and when she recalled the lesson now, Anya’s approach all those years ago had been similar.

Marie looked at her with an awed smile on her face. Lexa had already concluded that the girl loved to hear more about Anya’s and her shared past.

“Now, come” Lexa concluded the lesson. Although no scouts had obviously searched for her during her absence from her tent, there was always something she needed to organise.

Marie was bleeding from a split lip and her whole body ached with pain, while her fingers where Lexa had hit her last were bleeding also and had started to swell a bit.

Lexa took the girl’s wounded hand into one of hers and inspected the damage she had done. “We will get you some water to cool them” Lexa said to her young charge and took both of their staffs to return to the village.

Marie followed Lexa the way back to TonDC and let her eyes scan their surroundings. The commander noted with a mixture of satisfaction and relief that the girl was keeping her eyes open instead of silently being lost in her thoughts. So, Lexa hoped that this lesson had been enough to get the message across to the girl.

She would still give her the chance to decide for herself, if becoming a warrior was something she desired or not. Lexa did not think that Anya would have asked the girl for her opinion on that matter. But every one of her people had at least some basic fighting skills, so the girl had needed to acquire them first no matter what she actually wanted to do with the rest of her life.

As promised Lexa sent a maid fetch for some cool water when they had returned to their tent. Marie was sent to clean herself up from the training. The girl was more familiar with the outline of the village and the villagers had become used to the girl’s presence, so Lexa had started to send the girl from the tent for some short periods of time. Just as Lexa had predicted, not a single one of the people of TonDC had dared to move against Marie again, now that she had proclaimed her to become her second.

While Marie was following her orders, Gustus came into the tent. He had seen the girl on his way still bleeding slightly from her lip. “I doubt she possesses the skills to ever become a warrior, Lexa” the bulky guard said to her his dark eyes reflecting the same doubt, he had already voiced the previous night.

Lexa looked at him contemplatively from her throne “We shall see in the next days. The girl is still grieving deeply for Anya. But she will have to make the choice to either become a warrior or not for herself.” She had honestly not expected the girl to grief this deeply for her general, they had not shared a lot of time together and forming such a strong attachment outside of a family was unusual among her people. She had not yet spoken with the girl about her own family, although she knew from Anya already that her parents had died before the girl had been sent to earth.

Gustus nodded in agreement and before he could say more, Marie slipped back into the tent holding a piece of cloth to her lips to stop the bleeding. The maid also brought a small bucket with water from the stream from nearby and Marie gratefully put her swollen fingers inside, instantly feeling the relief the water provided.

“Lexa” Marie started to ask in a hesitant voice, she had become used to addressing the commander by her first name inside of the commander’s tent by now. An idea had bloomed in her head, while she had been away from the tent. She wanted to desperately proof that she could indeed become a warrior and the sooner she accomplished that the better.

“Yes?” Lexa answered, when the girl did not continue and looked at her with an expectant expression.

“Could I join some scouting teams or something?” the girl asked, with her eyes showing that she was still thinking about the idea herself.

Lexa blinked at the girl in honest surprise at her change of mind, while Gustus obviously had to control the urge to stare at the girl in disbelief. The child so far had not shown any initiative of any kind to join in anything the village did, except for when she was explicitly told to do so.

The commander thought about it for a second and then shook her head in the negative “Not right now, no.” The girl was not experienced enough that Lexa could let her join a real scouting mission, she was still moving way too loudly and had also not gotten any better at using the trees as a hideout.

“But I need to show that I can help somehow…” the girl trailed off with frustration glittering in her eyes.

“No one would let a second join scouting teams after only a few short days of training, Marie” Lexa explained when she saw disappointment in those eyes as well “But I might be able to spar some hours tomorrow to take you on your first hunt” she mused thoughtfully.

Lexa had made the last offer as a sort of compensation for having been so harsh with the girl before. Marie was instantly into the idea her grey eyes glittering with excitement.

“But I can’t shoot a bow, yet” the girl exclaimed in obvious disappointment, after a few minutes of silent anticipation.

Lexa nodded in acknowledgment “That won’t matter. You can try throwing knifes tomorrow.”  In all honestly, she had little hope that they would even manage to catch any prey at all. But she had not been on a hunt for some time as well and would enjoy the little moment of freedom for herself as well. In Polis she rarely had the sparse time to go on a hunting trip and it had been a few weeks since her last hunt.

The girl was even more enthusiastic now, letting out a squealed whoop of joy at the prospect. Although she still felt a lingering sadness in her mind, Marie knew that she could not afford to focus on it. She had to accept that Anya would not return rather sooner than later.

Gustus rolled his eyes at the childish demeanour of the girl, while Lexa watched her with a slight snort of amusement under her breath. If the prospect of a hunt was enough to diver the girl’s attention from her residual grief, it had been the right choice to offer her one and even if they would not catch any prey, it would have still been a success.

To both of them it was already clear, that the girl had decided to follow the path of a warrior but she still had a very long way to go to even become close to being one. But now that her will to actually learn had obviously kindled again, there was hope for her still. Lexa had promised her previous mentor to teach the girl and she would make sure that Marie would grow to become the best warrior she could be.

 

Chapter 27

Marie was so excited about the prospect of going on her very first hunt, that she found it extremely hard to settle down for the night. Her body was thrumming with nervous energy and her mind was racing wildly imagining what the next day might bring. Anya had previously said that she would not be able to hunt with her in tow and hoped that the woman had been wrong. Sadness flashed through her mind, at the thought that she would never get to go on a hunt with Anya. But Marie tried to resolutely push it from her mind, letting her thoughts wonder instead to which animals they might encounter.

Lexa had sent the girl ahead to settle for the night, while she was still changing out of her commander’s attire. Marie had gotten to see a softer side to her as a woman whenever she also retired for the night. Lexa absentmindedly wondered if the girl might simply be intimidated even more by her commander regalia. The girl had seemed more likely to speak more freely with her when she was still dressed in the nondescript clothing she slept in in the early mornings.

The days before, the girl had always already fallen asleep, when Lexa was finally able to try to get some rest. But right now, the girl seemed wide awake and her grey eyes instantly found Lexa’s when she joined her in the sleeping part of the tent.

Lexa had just opened her mouth to ask the girl, if she had already had a nightmare when the girl started to speak rapidly.

The child was speaking so fast, that Lexa had to strain her hearing to discern even a single word. “Slow down, Marie” Lexa gently reprimanded the girl and sat down on the edge of her bed, facing the girl sitting up in her own furs.

“I was thinking about the hunt you promised” Marie began a lot slower, face showing her excitement at the prospect.

Lexa did not have it in her heart to quench the girl’s obvious enthusiasm with the warning that there might be something tomorrow hindering their trip still. But with a possible war looming before her, she could not make definite plans. Lexa internally hoped that she would not have to disappoint the girl tomorrow.

“Where will we be going? Will we go alone? Or will Gustus come with us? Or someone else? What prey can we get? Will you make the kills? Will we face a pauna or Reapers?” Marie did not even seem to take a single breath in between all of her various questions, grey eyes shining and she seemed to almost be bouncing under her furs with barely contained excitement.

Lexa just raised an eyebrow critically at the girl, listening carefully to her stream of questions and waited until the child had finally ran out of questions for now.

“Sorry…” Marie finally ended in a soft tone and fiddled with the furs in her hands, a slight blush dusting over her cheeks as she averted her eyes to her fingers.

An amused smile played around the corners of Lexa’s mouth, when she finally had the chance to answer some of the questions “We will most definitely not face a pauna. And I dearly hope neither Reapers. You shall see tomorrow where we will go and now sleep. You can’t expect to hunt if you are not rested” she added in a serious tone, although her eyes showed the hint of a tease.

Marie pouted for a moment at not getting even half of her questions answered, but finally relented and laid back down again. She knew that trying to continue to bug the woman with questions would probably not get her any more answers.

Lexa also slipped under her own furs and hoped that the girl would sleep through the night without a nightmare. The girl had not stopped struggling with her nightmares so far and Lexa had almost gotten used to have the child sleep beside her for some part of the nights.

For Marie the seconds seemed to tick by ever so slowly, as she had started to roll around every few moments again not finding a comfortable position at all. Her thoughts were running wildly through her mind, imagining just what their hunt might look like tomorrow.

Annoyed at the constant shuffling of the girl next to her, Lexa huffed under her breath. She was too light of a sleeper to be able to slip into slumber with the girl constantly causing new noises. She waited for another few moments, hoping that the girl would quiet down, but her tossing and turning did not seem to change its pattern.

“Come here” Lexa ordered lowly and lifter her furs up for the girl to slip under them. She hoped that the girl would be able to sleep next to her or neither of them would be getting any sleep this night.

Marie blinked up at the woman in startled confusion, but obeyed her order nevertheless. Up to now, the commander had only let her join her, if she woke up after a nightmare, which usually happened at some point during the night. She slipped beneath the commander’s furs with a sheepish expression and tried to find a comfortable position, her body still felt as if it did not want to stop moving.

Lexa pulled the smaller body firmly against herself, when the girl just started to wiggle around next to her on the bed. “Now concentrate on my breathing and only on my breathing. Match yours to it” she said in a calm tone and placed one of the girl’s smaller hands flatly against her stomach, keeping it covered with one of her own hands. The girl would be able to feel her deep regular breathing that way and Lexa really hoped that it would calm the obviously restless girl.

Marie did as she was told and Lexa exhaled deeply in relief, when she felt the girl finally relax into sleep in her arms only a few moments later.

It had taken some time for Lexa to get used to sharing her sleeping space with someone again. She had never shared her furs with anyone after she had lost Costia, but to her the closeness of the girl also proved calming to some extent. She knew that she could not let the girl develop a habit of only sleeping well if someone shared the furs with her, but she hoped that with time Marie would feel secure enough again and sleep would come natural and restful again without aid.

Luckily for both of them Lexa’s closeness was sufficient enough to keep the nightmares away from Marie’s mind for the whole night and Marie woke up completely rested and buzzing with fresh energy. Her body ached from the hits she had taken in the last training, but she had already started to get used to a certain level of pain after a week of training with Gustus. The man had usually not been really careful with the hits he inflicted on her, only making certain that he would not seriously wound the child.

Lexa felt relatively rested as well and nudged the girl to get ready for the day, with an amused expression when Marie immediately began to show signs of her previous overexcitement. She had never seen her previous second express his excitement in such an open fashion, but Lexa somehow found the girl’s antics weirdly endearing.

Lexa watched from the corner of her eyes, how the girl almost wolfed down her food at breakfast and waited obviously impatient for herself to finish her own portion while she also listened to the reports from the guards and a scouting team that had just returned. Fortunately, nothing too pressing had come up overnight, so that Lexa would actually be able to take some time for their short outing.

Gustus who had joined them in the tent and brought in their breakfast had of course instantly picked up on the girl’s excitement and could not completely cover a laugh at the look on the girl’s face, when the scouts had at least left and Indra promptly entered to also make a report.

“Marie” Lexa admonished the girl in a sharp tone and with a brief glare, before her eyes returned to Indra.

Marie instantly straightened up again and tried to stand still, which proofed almost impossible at the moment.

Gustus chuckled lowly, when the girl started tapping her foot impatiently after another minute and shook his head at the girl’s antics. The girl was not behaving in a way that one of their own children at the same age would, but the girl had a certain naïve air around herself.

When Indra had finally left, after what had felt to Marie like another hour of a boring report, she directly asked “Can we go now?” with a little impatience creeping into her tone. Her grey eyes were shining again with excitement and she had already turned towards the exit of the tent, clearly expecting a positive answer.

Lexa snorted the child’s antics and shortly contemplated just letting her wait for a few moments later to teach her some patience, but relented a moment later “Yes, we can. Although your patience clearly needs some work as well.” There would come another time to teach her patience though.

Marie seemed slighty reprimanded for second, before she perked up again “I am just so …” she tried to justify herself.

“Exited?” Lexa supplied in an amused tone, rolling her eyes at the child “That much is painfully obvious” as she gathered a bow with a quiver for herself.

To Gustus’ outer dismay, Lexa had already decided that she would leave alone with Marie. Marie on the other hand was ecstatic with the prospect. She had started to see Gustus as a constant presence to the commander, but she did not particularly like the bulky man.

Gustus followed them to the tree line and Marie was fairly certain that the man would have followed them even further if the commander had not explicitly sent him back with a light glare.

With a happy skip to her step, Marie followed Lexa into the woods around TonDC, but to her utter dismay the hunting trip in itself turned downhill pretty fast.

Just as Anya had, Lexa directly started to correct the girl’s way to walk around the forest. The slight difference was that Lexa was quicker with giving her advice on how to improve in contrast to Anya just pointing out what she did wrong and not even offering her suggestions on what to do better.

If Marie had hoped that the commander would be searching for their prey and she would just stroll around with her, she had to realize that she was sorely mistaken. Lexa also expected her to find the trails of the animals living in the woods as Anya had already told her that the girl had had such a lesson before.

Marie’s mood soured again with every passing moment of not finding anything and she was only shortly away from snapping at the commander, in the same fashion as she already had done previously with Anya. When she more by chance than everything else managed to pick up on the tracks of a group of deer.

Marie had to this point not really thought about what would happen, once she actually succeeded in finding a trail. She had naively thought that spotting a trail would be the hardest part about hunting, but she had to learn fairly quickly that this assumption was a grave mistake on her account. Approaching animals without them getting aware of your presence proved to be much harder.

Lexa had begun to walk very closely to Marie, enabling her to physically pull the girl to a stop or efficiently guide her movement, before the child could step on a branch and make too much noise. She was also lowly trying to explain to the girl how important it was to keep track of the wind. Animals would otherwise be able to pick up on your scent, scaring them away, before you could get a clear shot at them.

It took them a long time to actually get nearer to the group of deer, but when they finally did get near enough to a younger deer and Marie made to grab her dagger strapped to her thigh, the commander shook her head, halting the child’s movements.

Lexa had taken a bow with her and had decided to take down larger prey, if they should find any. In all honesty, she had not really thought to be able to track and get close enough to prey with the girl on her first real hunt, but the girl had followed her instructions much better than Lexa had anticipated. Her movements would still need a lot of training until she would instinctively know on how to move silently, but she was not hopeless either. 

Marie watched on with wide eyes as Lexa notched an arrow, carefully took aim and took the animal down with a single shot. The girl was clearly in awe with her skill and looked at her with shining eyes.

“You will learn how to handle a bow later, but with your dagger you would have just caused it needless suffering, Marie” Lexa explained, expecting the girl to be at least slightly disappointed at having been denied to make an attempt, while they went to collect their prey.

Marie nodded in understanding, she had already gathered from narrations that hunters always tried to kill their prey in the first attack, that way the animal would die almost instantly and could not flee wounded.

Lexa eyed the deer critically she had just shot. The animal may still have been young, but it would be quite heavy already, so she opted for skinning the kill right there. She now almost regretted having chosen to go out alone with the girl, it would have been easier to have the deer carried back to TonDC in the company of other warriors.

The commander motioned Marie to stand close to her and ordered the young girl to watch her closely, as she carefully began to skin the animal. Lexa hoped that her charge would not be overly disappointed, that she had not made the kill herself, but she still remembered that she had not made a kill on her own first hunt as well and she had been deeply disappointed by that fact. After skinning the animal, she started to cut the deer into pieces and blood started to flow more freely from its body.

Marie had been standing beside the commander the whole time and had watched on intently, but as the blood started to flow, her stomach revolted suddenly and she immediately turned away beginning to retch from the sight.

Lexa snorted under her breath “You will surely make a great hunter” she commented with a roll of her eyes.

The girl was still retching and could barely look at the dead animal, before she got the urge to gag again.

When Lexa had finished in cutting the dear to smaller pieces long moments later, she finally regarded her young charge again. The girl looked completely pathetic, her face had a slightly greenish tint and she looked at the rest of the dead animal with obvious disgust.

“You do know that the meat you have eaten so far is procured exactly this way?” Lexa asked the girl with a laugh colouring her tone

Marie nodded with a miserable expression. She had known about the process of hunting and killing an animal for its flesh from books and old films. “I have just never seen it before” she justified, still looking down at the remainder of the deer in open disgust; the severed head was freaking her out the most.

Lexa inclined her head in understanding, it made sense as the girl had told her previously, that they did not have any kind of animals on their spaceship.

After the girl’s stomach had finally settled again, they distributed parts of the animal between them, while Lexa took the bigger and heavier parts and now carried their kill back to the village. Marie needed a few moments to get used to the sensation of the added weight and tried hard to ignored that she was basically carrying a still warm corpse of an animal.

On their way back to TonDC, Lexa asked the girl in an even tone “Have you put some thought into what you want for yourself?” she kept them moving, but she thought now was a good opportunity for the child to state her mind without the risk of being overheard.

Marie bit her lips for a second, before she nodded with a thoughtful expression “I did. I want to become a warrior. I just don’t know if I really can” doubt was still colouring her tone strongly.

Lexa had looked closely at the girl’s face and nodded not having detected a lie “You do not lack talent completely. You just need to learn everything from the scratch. But it is not impossible, Marie.”

The girl smiled slightly, obviously reassured enough for now by her words.

Lexa tried to let Marie navigate them back to TonDC and she had to compliment the girl on her instincts, as she guided them back well enough.

When they reached TonDC, Lexa was relieved to note that no one instantly stormed in her direction, so there probably had been no crisis while she had been away with Marie.

Dusk was already starting to fall and Lexa sent Marie to collect them some dinner. She expected the child to be tired out from the hunt, which had taken much longer than she had originally planned and wanted the girl to turn in a little earlier.

The villagers had gotten used to the kind child and the ones working at the communal kitchen always greeted her with a smile now.

Marie was balancing two plates and a pitcher with water on her way back to the commander’s tent, when she saw someone stagger into TonDC from the treeline. She could just see the outlines of the person through the impeding nightfall, but the person seemed to sway on their feet and Marie went to see if she could help.

When Marie got nearer to the stranger, she could recognize that it was a woman. The woman’s clothes were in a terrible condition, ripped and with a heavy layer of mud caked on them. The stranger’s hair was also matted with dirt and Marie could see some blood mixed into the dirt from the distance. It even was not possible to tell which hair colour was hidden beneath all the dirt.

She stepped closer hesitantly and when the stranger looked up at her, Marie let the things she had carried fall in shock at once.

As Marie looked into familiar brown eyes, her own eyes widened and she whispered in total astonishment “Anya?”

 

 

Chapter 28

The woman’s brown eyes connected with hers for a moment and Marie could shortly see recognition flashing through them, mixed with pain and immense fatigue.

In a spur of a second, Marie sprinted closer to Anya and flung herself at the woman overcome with a sudden storm of emotions. She could barely believe her own eyes, until she felt that Anya was indeed there as she wound her arms around her form and was not simply a fabric of her imagination.

When Marie closed her arms around Anya, the woman hissed loudly obviously in a great amount of pain and alarmed at the sound, Marie slackened her hold immediately and her hands came back from Anya’s side coated red with fresh blood.

The girl’s grey eyes widened in shock at the sight of the blood and she barely managed to keep Anya’s body somewhat upright, as the woman suddenly lost consciousness and slumped forward into her arms. Forgetting all about protocol for now, Marie turned in the direction of the commander’s tent still holding onto Anya’s heavy body and yelled loudly for Lexa to come and help her, panic flooding through her mind.

The commander stormed out of the tent, barely a second later with her swords drawn, obviously expecting a possible attack. Lexa quickly scanned the surroundings for whoever was attacking the girl and she frowned slightly when she spotted Marie holding onto the body of an unconscious woman.

“It’s Anya” Marie added instantly in a desperate tone with helpless tears now dripping down her cheeks, tightening the hold on Anya’s body subconsciously. 

Lexa sheathed her swords again immediately and quickly called over some guards to help carry the unconscious general into her tent as the healer’s hut was farther away and Anya seemed to be in bad shape.

Another second was sent as well to fetch Alira as Nyko still had to return to TonDC.

Marie let go of Anya’s body somewhat reluctant and watched on as two bulky guards carried Anya into Lexa’s tent and laid her down on the commander’s bedding, which was big enough to allow easy access to the wounded woman. She immediately stepped closer to Anya’s unconscious form, still not truly believing her own eyes. Marie had slowly begun to accept in the last days that Anya would never be returning and seeing her back now, was a huge shock. The fact that the woman was obviously seriously injured, was overwhelming her mind profusely.

“What happened to her, Lexa?” Marie asked the commander in a desperate tone, her worried grey eyes only left Anya’s face for a second to glance at Lexa shortly, before they instantly returned to Anya’s face.

“We won’t know until she wakes up” Lexa answered in an even tone although she internally wondered the same thing.

“Come, make room for Alira, Marie” the commander added in a strict tone, when Alira arrived barely a minute later and pulled the girl a pace away. No one had ever returned alive from the Mountain before and Lexa had been sure to never see Anya again as well.

Alira assessed the bleeding wound on Anya’s side first. She turned the woman onto her side and inspected the wound. “It seems that she was shot, but not by an arrow. A wound caused by an arrow would have been broader” the handmaid voiced her observation with a slight frown “The bullet has passed her through cleanly, it may save her life.”

Lexa narrowed her eyes at the information, but nodded. The Mountain Men had always been wielding guns, so such a wound was to be expected. She hoped Anya would survive this wound, as their healers had little experience with dealing with such wounds and most warriors who had sustained such a wound before could not have been saved. She absentmindedly noted that with armed Skykru roaming through her forests, it was not out of the realm of possibility that one of them had wounded Anya instead of the Mountain Men.

Anya was a great general and strategist and as her former first she of course held great personal value for the commander as well and she had already lost almost every one through the years who she had held dear. She had not allowed herself even a single moment to acknowledge the loss of her former mentor until now with the impending war and Lexa dearly hoped Anya’s fight would continue for her own and for Marie’s sake as well.

Marie could see that the wound Alira was inspecting carefully was still emitting a sluggish trickle of blood. None of them could tell how long ago it had been that Anya had been shot and the fact that she was still bleeding, was frightening Marie beyond imagination. The handmaid had already directed for blades to be heated in order to seal the exit wounds shut and finally stop the bleeding.

The girl watched on anxiously as Alira received the first red gleaming blade and pressed it on the round wound on Anya’s back and she sucked in a harsh mouth full of air. Anya groaned in pain as the smell of burning flesh penetrated the air, but she remained unconscious.

Before the guard with the second blade entered the tent, Nyko suddenly rushed into the tent. The man looked dishevelled and started addressing Lexa in rapid Trigedasleng. Marie was unable to understand, what the healer was reporting to the commander due to the speed of the language and her mind still being focused on Anya. His light eyes seemed to be blazing and Lexa had to loudly command him to stop his rapid report.

“Your case will be heard later, healer” Lexa harshly reprimanded the man for his insolence and shot a glare at the guards who had let the man enter without any announcement “First, do your duty”

Nyko seemed to visibly deflate, but nodded in agreement and Alira stepped back, so that the healer could take over Anya’s care.

Before the healer started his work, he left shortly to gather some things out of his hut.

In the meantime, a guard announced that one of the scouts who had gone missing had returned together with another man from Skykru. Marie’s head was already swimming with all that was happening at the moment and inched back closer to Anya.

Lexa had to leave to interrogate the scout on what had happened in the time he had been missing. She turned to Marie and the girl was still fixing Anya with an unwavering stare.

“Can I stay here with her?” the girl questioned in a low quivering tone her eyes glistening with moisture.

Lexa nodded her agreement, this way she was sure Marie would remain guarded inside of the tent at least “But do not hinder Nyko’s work, Marie” she cautioned the girl in a sharp tone.

The girl looked up shortly at the commander and nodded “I fear she will stop breathing when I look away…” she admitted, voice giving out on her at the end.

Lexa regarded the girl with softened eyes and squeezed her shoulders “Anya’s spirit is strong and her fight is not yet over.” She at least hoped that her former mentor would be strong enough to survive.

Marie hoped that the commander would be right and prayed to whatever god there may be to give Anya further strength, as she watched Lexa stride from the tent.

Nyko returned only shortly after the commander had left and grunted at Marie “If you are going to be standing there, you can help by cleaning her up” he pushed a bowl with warm water in her direction and handed her some cloths.

Marie nodded immediately, relieved to be able to do something that could really help and started by gently washing away the dirt caked on Anya’s face revealing huge bruises covering the skin underneath.

Nyko worked on the huger bleeding wounds and it took them a rather long time to take care of all of them, while Nyko started to explain to Marie what he was doing exactly and why he was treating the wounds with different herbs and salves. Marie sponged up all the knowledge she could get, as she thought that some understanding of healing could come in handy later.

During all the time, Marie paid special attention to Anya’s chest rising and falling in a rhythmic pattern with each breath and to her great relief she could not detect any changes in the pattern so far. She felt a flash of the memory of Tris suddenly stopping to breath from her mind forcefully, she had to convince herself that Anya would not die.

“Do you think Anya will survive?” Marie asked Nyko with hope in her voice after they had finally finished and Anya’s unconscious body was covered with fresh furs.

Nyko regarded both Anya and Marie for a moment before he answered “Anya is stubborn and strong. The bleeding has stopped. If the wounds are kept clean and do not fester infection, she should make it.”

Marie nodded with a hopeful smile playing on her lips, before she could say anything more the commander re-entered the tent closely followed by Gustus and Indra.

This time Lexa granted Nyko the permission to state for what he had rushed into the commander’s tent a few hours ago. Marie did not catch all the words as the speed of the speech increased rapidly, but what she could understand was enough. Two Skykru boys had obviously entered the village where Nyko had been. The boys had wielded guns and one of them had shot eighteen unarmed villagers, mostly elders and children. Marie felt a deep flash of compassion for the villagers who had been killed and wondered who from the other delinquents had been responsible for their senseless death.

Marie could see Lexa, Gustus and Indra clenching their teeth in silent anger from her spot next to Anya.

The scout who had delivered the Skykru man to TonDC had reported that the man had sought an audience with the commander to make peace. What a great way to start peace with sending an assassin to a small village, Lexa thought while her eyes glistened dangerously.

The threat Skykru posed now could not be ignored any longer. Lexa silently debated the options she now had to proceed, with the added threat of the Mountain she would need to eliminate Skykru fast before they could site with the Mountain Men. The first parts of the reinforcement she had ordered from the other clans had begun to arrive at the outskirt of TonDC and it would only be a matter of a few days until there would be enough warriors to march against Skykru, hopefully before Skykru could manage to erect a fortress.

She proclaimed that she wished to disguise as a normal servant and to observe the Skykru men herself. Lexa’s green eyes fell to Marie and she internally wondered if they would recognize the young girl as one of their own. She knew that her own warriors would likely not break under torture or at least just after immense efforts of torture and she sensed that another approach was called for with Skykru.

Marie had listened to the plan with a slight frown. She had honestly expected that the two men would just be tortured, as had obviously been done to John and she did not understand the difference.

Gustus did not agree at all with the plan Lexa had come up with in the end, he regarded it as too risky and he was completely against Marie’s role in it. But Lexa thought the plan was a good idea and as Lexa had officially taken over Anya’s role as Marie’s first, her orders were of course to be obeyed. Notwithstanding the fact that Lexa’s word as commander was as good as written law anyway.

To be fair Marie had no idea, if Gustus actually disagreed on her being part of the plan on principle or the other part where Lexa wanted to disguise herself as a servant girl and so get a purer impression on the two Skykru men they had captured and held in a cell at this moment.

Lexa regarded the silent girl standing next to Anya’s sleeping form with a thoughtful expression. Since the battle with the Sky kids and Tris’ death, the girl had mostly lost the sparkle in her grey eyes. Marie was still eager to learn and to adapt, but her huge curiosity had been dimmed notably. It had started to re-appear after she had confronted the girl with the choice of death. Some of the generals were still openly against her decision to let the girl live and they despised her decision to take her over as a second even more. It was essential that the girl got a chance to prove her loyalty and the faster the better.

Marie had admitted that the two men they had captured might not even recognize her when asked, but Lexa hoped to get a rise out of them by presenting them with a child from them that had obviously integrated well into Trikru.

In the last moments, Lexa revised her plan and motioned to a young second “Check if the clothes Marie wore when she arrived are still intact, if that is the case, bring them immediately. And hurry!”

Marie and Gustus were both looking at the woman with a questioning expression.

“Do you think you can act as if you were still our prisoner, Marie?” Lexa asked the girl in a low tone. The girl’s lip was still visibly burst and a few bruises were visible on her revealed skin, she also still looked rather thin, giving her the easy impression of having been incarcerated for some time.

Marie scrunched up her face in thought for a moment, before she nodded with uncertainty lingering on her features “I guess so, but why?” she questions in honest confusion.

Indra who was also standing behind them rolled her eyes at the girl, lowly growling under breath. It was obvious she still regarded the girl as an impertinent brat.

Lexa on the other hand nodded, she had told the girl to ask all questions she wanted, after all how was she supposed to learn anything, if she just obeyed orders without further thought. “Depending on your acting skills you will probably be able to get the most honest reaction out of them” Lexa told her as an answer. The commander hoped that the girl would be able to lie convincingly as it was sometimes a skill needed to keep you alive.

In the meantime, the young second had hurried back with a bundle of clothes in hand. He handed them directly to Marie and the girl started to shrug out of her light armour and re-dressed in her old clothes from the Ark. She had lost most of her shyness regarding her body as nakedness seemed to be a totally normal thing to the grounders, some of them even bathing together shamelessly in the streams.

The clothes somehow felt oddly on her skin now. The material scratchy and she definitely felt more comfortable and confident in the clothes she had received here.

Remembering her braids and that she never had worn any on the Ark, Marie opened the cords keeping them in place and combed her hair out with her fingers. Lexa took one of the cords and motioned for the girl to turn around. They would need to pull the girl’s hair up as the braids had left it unnaturally wavy. She fastened the ponytail with one of the cords and turned the girl around again, inspecting her appearance shortly.

The girl looked just slightly different from the first time Lexa had seen her dressed like this during their first meeting. Marie was still pretty thin, but had started to build light muscles, but this could be contributed to the weeks she had already spent on earth as well.

Marie felt oddly uncomfortable, when Lexa told her she would not be allowed to keep her dagger with her. But who in their right mind would let a prisoner be armed? So, it made sense that she had to leave it behind. Reluctantly, the girl handed the dagger over to Gustus who put it into a pocket of the coat he wore with the honest promise to return it to her later. She immediately missed the sense of protection the dagger had offered to her, as she handed it over.

In the time it had taken Marie to re-dress, Lexa had also shrugged out of the pieces that identified her as Heda and had covered most of her braids with a grey shawl. Marie watched the woman also shed all hidden weapons, she was actually surprised to see just how many small blades had actually been hidden in the commander’s clothes.

But the girl had no doubt in mind, that Lexa would still be able to effortlessly kill both of the Ark’s men with just her bare hands. She doubted that even members of the guard on the Ark had any real fighting skills, if you took their guns away or at least not what the survivors of the earth would recognize at fighting.

Gustus looked even bulkier and more imposing then ever, next to Lexa who seemed to have shrunk without the heavy armour concealing her slight built.

If Marie were not aware of the fact that Lexa was the one in power, even she would have easily been fooled by the image they presented. Marie saw that Lexa even limped a bit to emphasise her vulnerability, she really had to acknowledge that the commander could truly act well.

Marie was to be escorted into the cell later, as if she had been moved from one cell to another without any association to Gustus imposing as the commander or Lexa. That way Marie was able to keep watch on Anya a little longer. The woman had not steered so far, but Marie had watched carefully that she was still breathing regularly.

“Please, fight Anya” Marie begged the woman in a low wavering voice, fearing that the woman might still die and she knew just how much truly watching her die would hurt, now that she had regained her hope and waited for the guard to fetch her, when Lexa decided to include her in the charade.

 

Chapter 29

Marie had no idea how much time had already passed since Lexa and Gustus had left her in the commander’s tent. She had stayed next to Anya and kept careful watch over her unconscious form. To her great disappointment, there had been no change in her mentor’s condition at all. Marie tried to hold onto the belief that Anya would wake up soon and recover completely with all the strength she could must. She did not even wish to contemplate that the woman could still perish. Cautiously, Marie leaned closer to Anya and took one of her hands between her own. The woman’s fingers felt limp and heavy with unconsciousness, but to Marie they already felt weirdly familiar, she was relieved to feel that they still felt warm with life. She squeezed the woman’s hand lightly, hoping that somehow Anya would sense that she was back in TonDC and finally being taken care of. Her grey eyes remained focused on her chest, as it rose and fell slightly with each shallow breath the woman took.

A guard announced his presence by clearing his throat an undefined time later, startling Marie by his sudden appearance. He commanded the girl to follow him out of the tent. Marie nodded mutely at him, trusting that Lexa had left someone trustworthy to get her to the holding cells. She needed a short moment to let go of Anya’s hand, feeling the loss of contact like a physical slap almost. She followed the man in silence, her mind torn between slight regret and fear at having to leave Anya behind and nervous anticipation at what would transpire now. She was aware that Lexa was giving her a chance to prove her worth by including her into the plan. By the ruff description of how the two men looked who were contained in the holding cell, Marie had not been able to identify them. When they neared the holding cell, the young man suddenly grabbed one of her arms in a tight grip, pulling her along strongly. She did not put up a real fight, but she thought that the man had a slight apologetic expression on his face, before he pulled her in front of the holding cell. He shoved her so roughly into the way to the cell that Marie staggered slightly, trying to keep her balance and not fall down, but the man’s grip did not falter and kept her upright. She absentmindedly noted that she would probably have light bruising with the shape of his fingers on the arm later. The door to the holding cell was opened for him immediately by another guard.

Marie barely had any chance to let her gaze wander around the interior of the holding cell, before she was abruptly shoved inside. Her foot caught on an uneven stone on the floor and she tumbled to the ground immediately, hissing lightly as she scraped her palms on the rough ground.

Lexa looked up to see the girl being shoved onto the floor of the cell rather roughly by one of the guards and watched the scene with feigned disinterest. The fact that the child even fell over made the scene seem even more realistic. She could see the two Skykru men in the cell with her sprung to action immediately from the corner of her eyes, while she herself pressed slightly closer against the wall she had been leaning against. So far, the men had not revealed anything of particular interest, just demanding loudly to speak to their leader, wanting to justify themselves.

The man who was closer to the girl sprung up and helped Marie up from the floor looking at her face closely for long moments, before recognition seemed to flash over his face. “I know you from the Ark” he finally spoke after some time with confusion lacing his voice and a disbelieved expression marred his face. The man had obviously not expected a child from the Ark in the village and Lexa hoped that her plan would work. The men had not revealed anything interesting to her until now. The dark-skinned man obviously regarded his people as better human beings with their tech but she was not sure about the other one yet.

The bound dark-skinned man had also stood up now after he had heard the words of his companion and was looking at the girl closely as well, but he seemed to have figured out the girl’s complete identity only a moment later. “You are Marie Matthews, the youngest on the drop ship” his tone of voice was weirdly calm, he did not seem affected at seeing Marie at all.

Marie looked between them both for long moments, fright marring her face. Lexa had to give her credit for playing the scared prisoner rather well. Even when she had interrogated the girl a few days ago, she had not seemed this frightened. Now that she thought back on it, the girl had shown respect and certainly worry what was going to happen to her, but she had not appeared outright frightened.

“What happened to you, Marie?” the first man asked with concern now in his voice trying to sooth the girl, as he crouched down in front of the girl.

Marie flickered her gaze to the cell’s door and let her gaze wander to Lexa only for a second, as if just acknowledging the presence of another human being in the cell, before she answered in what sounded like a shaking voice “I got separated from the others some time ago together with John Murphy. We were caught in the woods and brought here. I don’t know what happened to John though and I don’t know how long I have been here.” Lexa had instilled in her to stay as close to the original events as possible, making the likelihood of her accidentally revealing something slimmer.

The men shared a short silent glance, before the one still standing next to Marie spoke again “No need to be frightened kid. The Ark guard is here now and we are going to get out soon” his words had obviously been supposed to be a reassurance.

Internally Lexa snorted at their arrogance. Skykru obviously had no incline as to how many warriors she had had at hand. She was certain that the Skykru guards would never succeed in reaching these two, if she did not set them free deliberately.

Marie just looked unconvinced and let herself slide down the wall next to her, as if she was weakened by days without proper food.

“Have you been tortured as well?” the man standing next to her asked the girl inquiringly, dark eyes kind and tone soft. His eyes remained on her burst lip for a second.

Marie shook her head vehemently “No, I have not been ill-treated” her tone was strong, slightly affronted with the thought that Anya would have tortured her. Lexa narrowed her eyes slightly, she had hoped that the girl would not reveal her role so soon and her injuries from training were plain to see on her skin.

“You are wounded” the man retorted, leaning closer to her and softly putting a hand on her bruised cheek.

Marie shrugged of his touch and she swallowed deeply. “The guards don’t like arguing” she offered lamely, but to her internal relief he obviously believed her.

“I have seen how savagely these people live, Marie” the dark-skinned man intervened in a scathing tone, clearly not believing a word the girl said.

Before Marie could retaliate, the other man spoke up again this time directly to Lexa “The girl did not do anything. She is not included in this right?” Lexa was glad that both of them were looking at her now, Marie’s grey eyes clearly showed her anger for a moment until she blinked and pushed it back.

The man’s eyes flitting to the dagger still lying on the cell’s floor, told Lexa that he wanted the girl spared from their fate. He was obviously much more compassionate; the dark-skinned man did not seem to care for Marie at all.

Lexa looked at him and also took a glance at the dagger, before shaking her head indecisively answering in an unsure voice “I do not think so. The commander did not say.”

“There has to be another way, Thelonious” the man said to his chained companion, voice desperate and his expression showed his deep concentration, probably trying to figure out what they could offer instead.

“There is no other way. Eighteen of our people have been slaughtered. Blood must have blood. It is our way” Lexa offered in a soft tone she usually reserved for small children. Simultaneously she was twirling a leave between her fingers to pass the time and strengthen her innocent image.

“What happens when we refuse to pick up the knife?” the man still standing next to Marie asked, swallowing harshly.

“The commander will use it to slit both of your throats” Lexa answered in a calm voice not looking up from the leave between her fingers.

The dark-skinned man seemed thoughtful “We can offer them technology, medicine, guns. I have seen how savagely they live …”

Marie interjected “They seem to be doing just fine without. I have not seen any starving people so far.”

Lexa gathered that the young girl was obviously angry at the dark-skinned man and then it clicked in her mind. She had finally asked the child for what had happened to her parents. Marie had told her the chancellor’s name once and it had to be the same Thelonious Jaha, who had had her mother executed and the girl incarcerated. But she still hoped the girl had not just blown her own cover with her outburst.

“I have seen some of them living in the desert. They are living like primitive savages. We can offer them so much more, we are better than they are” Jaha answered in a reprimanding voice and his dark eyes narrowed down at the child, clearly irritated with her.

Marie’s grey eyes blazed angrily “How can you even say something like that?!”

“Marie…” Kane tried to interject, hoping to calm the situation, but the girl ranted on her eyes glistening with angry tears.

“How is locking an eight-year-old up for trying to safe her mother better? How is floating the mother for being sick better?” the girl asked bitterly, glaring up at Jaha accusingly.

Lexa was relieved that Marie had not hinted at her new role here, but rather let her pent-up emotions towards the former chancellor out. It might also work to get an unfiltered reaction out of them being confronted with what they had done. She had been confused with the penalty for Marie. Her people cherished their children and although of course children had to be punished for stealing somehow, locking them up in isolation for such a prolonged time was not a feasible punishment in her opinion.

Jaha looked right back at her his gaze unyielding “We were trying to survive, Marie. We all deeply regret tragedies like yours. But sacrifices had to be made for the human race to survive.”

To Lexa the man’s words seemed empty and dishonest, while his face was not showing even a glint of compassion for the girl. He might speak true that he remembered all he had wronged, but he obviously did not feel for their deaths.

The other man in comparison looked deeply pained at the reminder of the girl’s fate.

Jaha obviously was not finished “What were we to do with a criminal child without parents?”

Marie blinked at him in disbelief, clearly shocked into speechlessness and obviously fighting hard against her tears now.

“Thelonious, please” the other man tried to calm Jaha down, who had started to get angry as well.

“What, Markus!” Jaha answered hotly “We did what we had to do. One life loss of a single girl had no meaning at all.”

Markus just shook his head tight-lipped as an answer and sat down next to Marie with an apologizing expression and a kind smile while Marie was trying not to start to cry. He hovered beside Marie indecisively for long moments until his gaze fell back to Lexa “So, there is nothing we can do at all?” he asked pleadingly.

Lexa just shook her head in the negative silently as an answer unwilling to say more.

Markus regarded the dagger again for long moments, before he heaved himself back to his feet and went to pick it up from the floor.

Jaha had also stood up again now, watching in confusion what the other man might be doing “What are you doing, Markus? We are not going to comply with their ways! They want to turn us against each other. That is not the way we achieve peace.”

“They showed as a way to peace, Thelonious. If we truly want peace…” Markus said and picked up the dagger from the floor and turned back to Jaha and offered the dagger handle first to the other man “You have to kill me” his voice was calm now and his dark eyes shown with acceptance.

“No” the former chancellor answered immediately and crossed his arms over his chest “We have not come this far to die here. There has to be another way than murder.”

Markus shook his head slightly, swallowing and now brought the dagger to his own arm “What if we can only survive by sacrifice?” he asked in a strangled tone.

“Markus no, do not do it!” Jaha shouted and went to the man as far as the chains keeping him at the wall allowed it.

“We do need peace between our people, Thelonious or the killing will never end” Markus said in a strong tone and pressed the dagger deeply into his own arm. Jaha strained against the chains, reaching Markus finally and wrenching the dagger from his hand. He threw the dagger away from both of them and pressed onto the bleeding wound.

“Help us, please” Thelonious had turned to Lexa and his words sounded honest and his face finally revealed some compassion for the first time.

Lexa took out a cloth hidden in her shirt and gave it to the man, wanting to see what he would come up with as an alternative.

Thelonious bound the bandage over Markus’ arm quickly and Marie watched as he suddenly bent down again to retrieve the dagger. In a quick movement, he had pressed the dagger against Lexa’s neck and hauled the young woman up pressing her against his chest.

Marie’s eyes widened in shock, but she could not detect fear in the commander’s eyes and was reassured that Lexa knew that she could disarm Jaha without any problems.

Gustus and two guards had burst into the cell immediately, when Jaha shouted for them to break them free, pressing the dagger firmly against Lexa’s neck.

Lexa commanded them to wait in Trigedasleng, when they made to grab their swords and forcefully remove the man from their commander.

Markus had also stood up on visibly shaking legs and was trying desperately to reason with Jaha “Thelonious please, she is just an innocent girl. Let her go. This will not help us” he pleaded with the other man.

Marie could have laughed out loud at the absurdity of the statement as Lexa was anything than just a girl. She watched on in silent awe as Lexa brought Thelonious to the cell’s floor in only a few seconds and now had the dagger pressed to his throat.

Thelonious surrendered immediately when he recognized that he had no chance and Lexa stood up again.

Marie could see her whole posture changing all of a sudden. Gone was the young woman, who could have easily passed as a mere servant perfected even with a slight limp. In her place even in the clothes she wore was a proud woman who seemed to radiate power somehow.

Lexa was handed back her shoulder pauldron with the red sash and buckled it into place and finally removed the shawl that had hidden her intricate braids and nodded to Marie who stood up from the floor as well immediately.

Gustus stepped closer to the girl and also handed her back her own dagger immediately and both Marcus and Thelonious looked at Lexa in disbelieved surprise.

“You are the commander?” Marcus asked disbelief colouring his voice, as realization dawned on his features.

“I have learned much about you. It is clear your intentions are honourable, your desire for peace is true” Lexa addressed only Marcus now in tight tone.

“Free him” the commander ordered and the guards obeyed immediately while Marie had stepped up next to Gustus.

“Later we will talk. In the meantime, your friend will be used to send a message” Lexa said calmly and while one guard restrained Marcus, two others started to beat Thelonious up. Markus desperate pleas to stop were completely ignored. “The massacre must be answered. Blood must have blood” she said with absolute authority in her voice.

Marcus looked at her disbelievingly as the guards hauled Thelonious out of the cell only a moment later.

“You are not a prisoner here” Marcus finally addressed Marie with confusion clear on his face, when he spotted the girl standing behind the commander.

Marie just shortly glanced at Lexa, before she inclined her head with a resolute expression. They had not spoken about what she was allowed to reveal and what not, so she thought it might be better not to answer in words.

“Get him something to eat and drink” Lexa commanded to one of the guards “Escort him to me later” she instructed. The woman turned from Marcus and regarded Marie for a second and acknowledged her with a nod “Come” she ordered as she strode out of the cell without another word.

Marie followed Lexa quickly without looking back at Marcus even once. She did not harbour any particular ill feelings towards him, but she had not felt pity for Jaha when he was beaten up earlier. A small part of her even believed that the man deserved every hit he had gotten and much more.

On the way back to the commander’s tent, Marie remembered that Anya would probably still be lying there. She desperately hoped that Anya was still breathing, but Marie guessed that someone would have alerted Lexa if Anya’s condition had changed even slightly.

“You did well” Lexa acknowledged on the way back to her tent towards Marie.

Marie smiled slightly and nodded, relieved that she had not screwed up.

“Your strategical thinking needs some improvements though. But you will learn” Lexa continued, letting her gaze travel through the village.

She had given orders to the guards on what message Thelonious should deliver to the Skykru. She would grant them two days to leave or her army would attack. She would still listen to what Marcus had to offer though.

On the return to her tent, they both changed back into their normal clothing and Lexa applied war paint to her face. She wanted to present her most imposing persona to Marcus when he was allowed to speak to her later. Marie immediately checked on Anya and was relieved to see that woman was still breathing, although she still had not woken up either, but Lexa reassured the girl quickly that she had every faith in Anya’s strength.

 

 

 

Chapter 30

Marie watched on, sitting next to Anya’s unconscious form, as Lexa re-dressed in her full commander regalia. She was intrigued most by the glove that ended on the first knuckle and that was decorated with metal mimicking the bones of the hand underneath the black leather. It was really impressing to see the woman change from a normal young woman to the mighty leader, she actually was.

Tentatively Marie placed one of her hands over Anya’s larger one and was relieved to feel the skin normal to the touch temperature wise. She had feared Anya might have gotten an infection or had slipped away while she had been in the cell with Kane and Jaha, but to Marie’s internal gladness the woman’s skin was neither hot with a fever nor cold in death. She clenched her teeth angrily, thinking about what the former chancellor had said to her. His words had almost assured her, that she would have never been integrated back into the society of the Ark after her mother died. In the months she had spent lonely in the small cell in the sky box, she had continued to hope that she would be released and given the chance to live with another family. Her family might not have had many close ties to others on the Ark, but she knew that there would have been at least a few people willing to look after her. It felt like a physical punch to the gut to acknowledge the fact, that either no one had spoken up to take her over or the chancellor had just denied them for whatever flimsy reason.

Lexa was meanwhile applying black war paint around her eyes and down her cheeks. Marie had never seen her with it so far and thought it reminded her of a racoon; an animal she had thus far only ever seen a sketch of in an old book. The paint made the green in the commander’s eyes stand out even more strikingly. The commander’s eyes seemed to almost gleam of their own, now that they were accentuated by the black paint.

“You can change back as well, Marie” Lexa suddenly said, when she put down the fine brush and startled the girl who had taken up to simply watch Anya’s chest falling and rising again.

“Sure” Marie nodded in agreement and begrudgingly stood up, losing the contact to Anya’s hand once again. She quickly started to shrug out of her old clothes from the Ark. She was suddenly glad to be able to get them off of her skin and hopefully she would never have to see the clothing ever again. Hastily Marie re-dressed in the clothes, she had been given by the grounders and she was so familiar with them now, that she did not need any help anymore to get everything in its right place. She immediately felt more comfortable and confident in the light armour.

To complement her outfit, Marie buckled the sheath of the dagger around her thigh and placed the dagger she had received back from Gustus into its sheath. She had somehow come to enjoy the sound of the metal sliding into place over the course of the last days.

“Turn around” Lexa ordered Marie softly, as she had watched the girl change back into her clothes. The commander loosened the band keeping the girl’s blonde hair up in the ponytail and gently combed the hair through with her fingers. With quick and well-practised movements, Lexa braided the girl’s hair into a few intricate braids in a style she herself had worn as a second many years ago. The hairstyle was unfortunately more intricate than the easy design Alira had used the previous days, so the girl would continue to need help with her hair, but Lexa thought that as her second, the girl was entitled to receive a little help from one of the handmaids. It would certainly get a little complicated now that Anya apparently had not died and she had already officially proclaimed to take Marie as her second, but they would be able to figure something out together, once the older woman had woken up.

The commander had also ordered to have a coat tailored for the girl the previous day. It would start to get colder soon and the raining would increase as well. Lexa saw the called for piece of clothing lying on her bed and held it open for Marie to slip in. It was a coat made from leather, that had been dyed into a green so dark, it seemed almost black on first glance. The leather had been layered to make it protective against light attacks and had a long hood on the back. She had thought about the inclusion of some metal inlays as well, but had discarded the idea. Marie would need to get used to added weight of the coat without adding even more to it, as long as the girl was so inexperienced, she could also easily injure herself on spikes or additions like that. Lexa fastened the buckles for Marie around her midriff and took a step back to assess the girl’s appearance.

The commander nodded with a satisfied gleam in her eyes “You look like one of us now, Marie” she proclaimed in acknowledgement. The girl truly looked completely different, she would easily pass for a warrior in training now. The combination of her light hair and her eyes would forever make her stand out among Trikru, but she already appeared adapted to them now.

Marie dearly wished to have access to a mirror now, wishing to see for herself what she looked like now, but there was none in the commander’s tent. She felt weirdly stronger with the coat and she smiled at Lexa nonetheless, being appreciative about the gifted coat. “Thank you” Marie said softly and smiled a bit wider, as she let her fingers trail over the soft leather.

Lexa gave a curt nod as acknowledgment “Appearances are very important in politics” she explained in a serious tone.

Marie looked at the commander with a scrunched brow, as she did not understand how she should have anything to do with politics. She was not even a true warrior yet after all.

“First impressions are most important. You are a part of Trikru now, which will be made official in the next days, and you need to look like that” Lexa explained to the girl in a serene tone “And this does not only apply to Marcus kom Skykru, but even more to the generals of the clans that will arrive soon”. If the girl were only Anya’s second still, it would not be as important, but Lexa knew that she had put an even higher focus and interest on the child by proclaiming her to become the commander’s second, an honour quite many would envy her for.

Marie nodded with a thoughtful expression, carefully contemplating the new information silently.

They had just finished getting ready and Marie had checked again that Anya was still breathing, when one of the guards outside of the tent announced Indra’s arrival.

The general entered accompanied by Gustus, as Lexa closed off the curtain concealing her bed from view from the main part of the tent, motioning Marie to leave Anya be for now. She could see the hesitation flash over her young face, before she followed her mute order.

Lexa sat down on the wooden throne in the centre of the tent and Gustus took position next to her as her personal guard. Marie stood beside all of them at first, unsure of what to do exactly until Lexa ordered her to stand on her other side.

Indra made a report telling the commander, that another general was ready to move his warriors into position at a river. Marie noted to herself that she was really making progress in Trigedasleng. She did not understand all of the words Indra had used, but she understood enough now to make sense of the report without the need for further translation. She would probably be able to follow most conversations with only a little more practise.

Lexa just listened to Indra’s report mutely without any reaction, until other guards suddenly entered the tent leading Marcus Kane in between them.

Marie could see Marcus swiftly looking over the attendants in the tent and his glance lingered a second longer on herself and she thought she might have seen surprise flashing through his dark eyes before he directed his gaze to the commander.

Lexa just stared down at the man sitting regally on her throne without a word at first. She was well aware of just how unnerving it was to others to be confronted with her calm stoicism.

It was Marcus who spoke first and he did so with desperation evident in his voice “Commander, we can still find a way to avoid violence.”

Marie tried to keep her face impassive as Lexa and Gustus were doing, but she highly doubted that the army would really want to lay down their weapons after eighteen people had been slaughtered in a village. If she understood one thing about the new culture around herself, it was that senseless deaths were paid for with blood.

Indra reacted to the man’s declaration instantly, her hand gripping the hilt of her sword tightly, as she answered hotly “The Sky people have given their answer. They think you are weak.”

The general had switched back to their native tongue and it was apparent that Marcus did not understand most of what was said by the confusion flashing over his features.

Lexa jutted her chin out defiantly as Indra ended her statement with the word “weak”. The commander knew that it was imperative for her survival, that her people would never begin to question her own strength.

“Let me show them how strong you are” Indra ended gripping her sword tighter and glaring at Markus with hateful dark eyes.

Marcus was eying Indra with barely covered suspicion. He did not need to understand the words that were spoken to sense that whatever was being said, was not positive for him.

Lexa had listened to them both, without any outward reaction and she spoke in an even voice “My warriors were watching your camp. They move guns to the wall. I offer generous peace, they prepare for war” looking down at the man impassively.

Marie silently begged that no additional warriors had been shot so far to add to the pile of grounders Skykru had already killed.

Marcus raised his hands in a soothing gesture when he answered, desperation more pronounced in his tone now “Commander with all due respect…”

The man made to step closer to the throne Lexa was sitting on and the guards who had brought him in were already stepping in front of the throne to protect their commander, blocking Marie’s clear path of view from Marcus.

Marie highly doubted that Marcus had any idea, how powerful the commander really was. It had taken her several days to get even the slightest understanding of the hierarchy the grounders lived in and she still found the concept weird.

“When we are threatened our first instinct is to defend ourselves. In that we are very much like you” Marcus tried to explain and fabricate common ground between them, before he pleaded “Give my people more time. Please!”

Lexa regarded him for a second, before she responded “Time to strengthen your defences?” brow raised inquiringly.

“No” Marcus instantly declined in a firm tone “Time to understand the generosity of your offer.”

Indra reacted to his words first in a low and serious voice “There can be no understanding between Skykru und Trikru. We are born of different worlds.”

Marie was taken off guard by the conviction with which Indra had spoken and she desperately hoped that the woman was wrong in her notion or her place with Trikru would never be secure for her, if everyone were to share Indra’s opinion. In her mind, there absolutely was a chance for an understanding between both people, but it would need heavy adjustments from Skykru first.

“Blood must have blood” Indra finished hotly glancing at Lexa who still sat as relaxed on her throne as if they were merely discussing the weather and not a possible war. Marie thought she was starting to understand what Lexa had meant with her words about politics and the importance of appearances.

Marcus was looking at the commander expectantly now, probably aware that his chance to convince the young leader had passed and there was nothing more he could do.

“Move your warriors into place” Lexa commanded Indra to start preparations to march against Skykru.

The general did not react with words and Marie watched as Indra just turned around and left the tent without another word. It was obviously a signal that the commander had made her decision and the talks were finished for now.

Marcus also watched Indra leave with alarm flashing over his features and he quickly turned back to Lexa rapidly addressing her again in an almost pleading voice “Commander, Indra is right. We are born of different worlds. But we have to share one world.”

Marie silently doubted that Lexa would “have” to do anything, if she did not want that for her people. The grounders were clearly at an advantage. They outnumbered Skykru greatly and although a war between Skykru and the survivors of the earth would not be fair, their knowledge of this world and their sheer number would secure their victory.

Lexa just shortly glanced at Gustus and stood up from her throne in one fluid movement and made to move away behind the curtain where Anya was still lying. The commander motioned for Marie to proceed herself and the girl obeyed instantly, slipping behind the fray material mutely.

“Skykru and Trikru, together” Markus called behind the retreating commander and Lexa stopped in her tracks and turned back towards the man a few seconds later.

“Maybe we can learn to understand each other” Marcus continued with conviction clear in his tone and an almost hopeful expression on his features.

Lexa and Gustus shared a silent glance. Lexa internally hoped, that the man might be right in his notion. If Skykru were not to ally with the Mountain Men, they might ally with her instead and they might finally have a real chance against the Mountain in the future. Skykru were bound to have a much better understanding of the tech the Mountain was using against them.

Anya and she had decided to give Marie a chance in the ranks of Trikru, but giving one single child, which had done no real wrong, a chance was a totally different scale than trying to bring peace between her people and Skykru. Too much blood had already been spilled for her people to accept peace without any retribution. She could force peace between them, but it would cost her greatly later.

“All I am asking for is a little more time, please” Marcus finished his plea and waited for the commander to react.

Lexa seemed to contemplate his words for a moment, before she replied her voice as unyielding as the blade of her sword “The decision has been made. We move into position right now. You will be brought back to your people then.”

The commander motioned to one of the guards and he took Marcus in a vice like grip and escorted him out of the commander’s tent, not showing any reaction to the man’s obvious struggle.

Marie had continued to listen from behind the curtain and had already checked on Anya.

Lexa found the girl kneeling next to Anya’s unconscious form and gently holding one of her hands in between her smaller ones.

“Where are we moving?” Marie questioned Lexa softly without looking up from Anya’s face. The woman’s face was still looking too pale to be healthy and she had obviously not woken up yet.

“We will break camp in a few hours and march to theirs to surround them. Skykru will be surrounded before their time is up” Lexa explained in a strong tone, sitting down on the edge of the bed and facing the girl.

“I thought you are giving them the opportunity to leave your land?” Marie questioned back with a furrowed brow.

The commander nodded curtly with a satisfied gleam in her eyes, that the girl was starting to use her head “I am. But if they do not leave until dawn in two days, every one of them will be slaughtered.”

“But…” Marie started and stopped again looking down at her hands still holding onto Anya.

“Continue” Lexa commanded the girl to speak her mind in a softer tone.

“This is not meant as …” Marie paused again trying to sort through her thoughts “…criticism”

The commander had the ghost of a smile playing around her lips for a second “You are allowed to speak your mind freely, when we are alone, I already told you that. You only have to be careful who you let listen to your thoughts.”

Marie nodded and continue again “Marching against Skykru is bound to cause heavy losses. The guard that came down are heavily armed with guns.”

Lexa nodded letting out a deep breath. She had already thought about that and she knew that the girl was right. Fighting against Skykru would cause her army heavy losses, but every single warrior of her would rather die in battle than let their demand for blood be unanswered.

“That is absolutely true, Marie” Lexa answered and leaned slightly closer to the girl still kneeling next to the bed “But Skykru will not have enough bullets to kill all of us.”

Marie swallowed thickly her eyes swimming in unshed tears, as she looked down on Anya “Do you think Skykru have shot Anya?” she asked tentatively in a small tone.

The question had been nagging at Marie’s mind for some time now. The woman had told her that the Mountain Men also wielded this kind of weapons, but from what she had heard from the scouts reporting to the commander, the Skykru guard that had patrolled through their forests was also armed with guns and they had shot at every suspicious movement.

Lexa contemplated the question for a few moments, also her own thoughts had gone in the same direction already “I cannot say. We will know when Anya wakes.”

The commander had also noted with satisfaction that Marie had obviously already stopped thinking herself to be part of Skykru, as she always separated herself from their actions in the words she spoke.

“Rest a bit, before we break camp” Lexa suggested to Marie who looked as exhausted as she felt. As the commander, she would need to be seen in the camp right now, but the girl was unaccustomed with the strain of the days before a battle “The next days will be strenuous.”

Marie bit her lips for a moment, obviously unwilling to follow her suggestion and a conflict flashed over her features visibly.

Before Lexa could reprimand the girl to follow her suggestion, Marie looked at her with her grey eyes swimming in tears and her voice quivering “I fear Anya will slip away, when I look away too long now …”

 Lexa let her face and eyes soften, as she covered Marie’s and Anya’s hand with her own squeezing reassuringly “There is nothing you can do now. Anya would not want you to exhaust yourself needlessly. She will wake when she is ready, she is strong and too stubborn to surrender now.”

Marie looked up at Lexa with a wavering smile, but nodded and slipped out of the coat and pulled her own furs closer to the bed, before she lied down.

Lexa watched the girl with a slight frown, it was obvious that the child wished to stay as close to Anya as possible and she could only hope that her former mentor would truly wake up soon. She left the tent without another word, but she assigned guards to keep watch of the tent for her during her absence.

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

Chapter 4: Chapter 31 - 40

Chapter Text

Chapter 31

It was a few hours later when Lexa was finally able to return to her tent. She had been required to organise more than she had anticipated. The people of TonDC were less than pleased with the news of what had transpired at their neighbouring village and Lexa had needed to try to calm them down before they would just march against Skykru without proper order. More warriors had slowly begun to arrive as well, requiring accommodations and instructions until their respective generals arrived as well. She had not managed to catch any sleep at all this night, but Lexa was used to having to stay awake and alert through several days if required.

Directly upon her entry, she quickly discarded of the heavier parts of her armour placing them on a table as silent as possible, wanting to free herself of their weight at least for a short time. She slipped behind the curtain into the sleeping area of the tent on silent feet, wanting to check on Marie and her general.

Anya still was still lying on her bed and had obviously not woken up yet, her position unchanged from a few hours prior. The woman still looked sickly pale and Lexa had ordered for Alira to prepare a strong broth for Anya. The woman would die of thirst, if they did not force something into her soon; they had no idea when was the last time the general had gotten something substantial into her body.

She could see Marie starting to twist in her furs and the girl’s face scrunching up as a nightmare took hold of the child’s mind. Lexa crouched down next to her and put her hands on the girl’s shoulders to stop her movements and gently shook the girl to rouse her “Marie, wake up” she addressed her in a soft tone.

It took a few moments, until the girl’s grey eyes fluttered open, widened in fear and her body shot upright trying to rip herself from the hands on her shoulders.

“Ssshhh, you’re alright” Lexa tried to sooth the obviously frightened girl “Look around, you are safe, Marie”

“Lexa…” Marie said in a clearly shaken voice, once recognition flashed over her features.

“You are safe” Lexa repeated soothingly and waited on the girl’s eyelevel until her erratic breathing slowed back to a normal rate.

Marie nodded some time later, indicating mutely that she was feeling better now. Only the fraction of a second passed, until she sucked in a harsh bout of air and her gaze frantically searched for Anya behind Lexa’s form.

“She is still breathing, Marie” Lexa reassured the child and stood up, just as Alira announced her presence at the entrance of the tent.

Marie could see through the fray material of the tent, that the sun had already risen while she slept and she did feel much more rested now. She could hear the activity of the army around them in TonDC, so she assumed that Lexa must have already given the order to start breaking down the camp.

The girl stood up from the furs and folded them together in a neat pile, while Alira entered carrying a tray with food and drink for Lexa and Marie and a bowl with steaming broth for Anya.

Involuntarily, she shuddered as she remembered parts of her dreams. Her mind was trying to convince her, that the commander’s army would all fall under the rain of bullets from Skykru and she was left standing as the lone survivor surrounded by the slaughtered warriors.

Marie put on the coat again and strapped the sheath with the dagger onto her thigh and instantly felt stronger somehow. She observed the commander mutely, who had been washing away her black war paint and re-braided some of the braids that had started to loosen slightly. Lexa was straightening her spine slowly trying to get out the aches that came from being on her feet so long. Marie thought that without the war paint and all the heavy armour, the commander looked much more the young woman she still was, but she was also aware that none of the other warriors would probably ever get to see any cracks in the strong façade of the commander. She had begun to slowly understand how important the image of unwavering strength was for the commander, the loyalty of her warriors obviously depended on her continued strength.

Alira put the tray on a small table that stood next to the bed and handed a plate with food and a mug to Marie “Good morning, child” she greeted the girl with a kind smile.

“Good morning” Marie greeted the woman back with a smile of her own on her face. She remembered that the older handmaid had taken care of her, when she had fallen ill and had spent many hours sitting at her bed. She took the offered food and the drink with a thankful nod and plopped back down on the pile of furs to eat. She wanted to be able to see Anya and she would not have a clear view of the woman, if she went to eat a table in the main part of the tent.

Lexa joined back with them a moment later and also started to eat the food Alira had brought for her.

In the meantime, Alira had sat down slightly behind Anya and had brought the woman’s upper body onto her lap. Gently, she opened Anya’s mouth and slowly forced some of the broth down the other woman’s throat.

Marie ate her breakfast in silence and just observed how Alira took care of Anya. After she had emptied the bowl of broth long moments later, the handmaid inspected the open wound on Anya’s arm and at last the gunshot wound. She nodded with a satisfied expression “No signs of infections in the wounds” she proclaimed with apparent relief.

Marie let out a breath, she had not been aware of holding at hearing the good news. Even though Anya still had not regained her consciousness, she knew that an infection would almost surely kill the woman, probably without her waking up at all beforehand.  “Why has she still not woken up?” Marie asked in a worried tentative voice, unsure if her question would be welcome.

Alira turned to the girl and gave her a slight smile “Anya has lost a lot of blood; her body needs time to heal. She will wake up when she is ready.”

Both Lexa and Alira seemed to have faith that Anya would indeed wake up, so Marie just nodded mutely hoping the woman would do so soon. Lexa had already given her almost the exact same answer the night before.

The commander dismissed Alira for now and put her armour and her long coat back on and lastly fastened the commander’s red sash into place under her shoulder pauldron.

Marie watched on in awe as the commander strapped two short sheaths onto her back and sheathed two elegant swords into them. Silently, she wondered how Lexa could sheath the swords without slicing away some of her hair or cutting into her back so effortlessly.

“No face paint?” Marie asked in honest curiosity, as Lexa seemed to turn to leave the tent.

Lexa shook her head in the negative and amusement danced through her green eyes “It is called war paint, not face paint” she corrected the child gently “and no, we are not marching into war today only into place for a potential war tomorrow.”

Marie nodded mutely, storing the new information away in her memory. She was still learning a lot of little things daily and she internally highly doubted that this would be changing any time soon.

“Come” Lexa ordered the girl and turned around to leave the tent. Upon their exit, Gustus fell into step slightly behind Lexa mutely and Marie copied the man’s position.

All around TonDC, the tents that had been erupted in the previous days were being removed again. During the course of the night, more warriors had obviously arrived, as TonDC seemed to be bursting with warriors now. When a warrior spotted the commander approaching, he would stop doing whatever he had been doing and bowed deeply to the commander with a solemn “Heda”.

Marie could easily distinguish the warriors, who had seen her before from the ones who had just arrived at TonDC. The ones who had not seen her until now, were mostly glaring at her as if she was the devil herself. She tried not to react to the threatening glares, but she did move a little closer to the commander nonetheless. She was absolutely certain that the commander and even Gustus would not let anyone harm her physically though, which was the only thing keeping her walking behind the leader without the urge to flee.

Lexa had to meet with one of her generals, getting a short update on the status of the breaking down of the camp. They would be ready to depart in a few hours and would leave directly to march on the Skykru’s camp.

The commander swiftly decided, that there would be enough time now to put in a training session with Marie. To her internal relief, Anya’s return seemed to have fuelled the girl’s will to fight and Lexa noted improvements with silent satisfaction. The girl still did not stand a chance at actually beating Gustus, but she started to manage to at least dodge or parry some of his attacks. Marie was still fighting without enough tactic and was giving away her movements before she made them. Against a completely unskilled opponent, the girl might now stand a chance to get some hits in, but as most of her warriors were highly skilled, Marie still needed a lot of training. It was promising nevertheless to see the girl’s skill slowly developing.

“Enough” Lexa called loudly after Gustus had beaten Marie effortlessly more than ten times in a row.  She unbuckled her shoulder pauldron and placed it down next to the training pit.

“Watch my movements, Marie” Lexa ordered sharply and shooed the girl to the side, taking a fighting stance opposite of Gustus.

Even though Gustus was much stronger and heavier in built, they were both aware that the commander could beat him in hand combat relatively easily. She had learned early on, to make her slight built and the agility it offered one of her main suits. Marie would need to acquire this fighting technique for herself as well, if she ever wanted to stand a real chance. The girl was still young, but she would physically never match up to most of the other warriors; even if she might still grow to be tall Lexa highly doubted, she would ever be this muscular and burly.

Marie was gingerly rubbing the elbow, she had landed on a few times and was sure that tomorrow the arm would mostly be blue from a huge bruise. She watched on as Lexa danced around Gustus, always eluding his swings with minimal quick movements. She was awed by the woman’s effortless agility and wondered if she would ever manage to move like this.

After a few minutes without any serious hits, Lexa stepped back and turned back to Marie “What do I do differently to you?” she questioned the girl, walking over to her.

“You always get out of Gustus reach quickly, before he gets an actual hit in” Marie answered easily. The girl noted that even though Gustus and Lexa had both fought for several minutes, neither of them seemed to sweat and their breathing did not seem elevated at all. Marie herself in comparison had broken into a heavy sweat under the light armour she wore and she highly doubted she would ever get the stamina, they both obviously had.

The commander re-buckled her shoulder pauldron quickly and nodded in acknowledgement to the girl “Correct, we need to work on your agility. You may never be able to match up in pure strength only.” Marie let her shoulders drop dejectedly, before Lexa continued “But only very few battles are won with strength only. You will need to learn to analyse your opponents’ movements and how to utilize their strength against them” she explained to the young girl in a serious tone.

The girl nodded in understanding, starting to see why both Lexa and Anya seemed so keen to have her watch other warriors fighting against each other.

Looking around TonDC, Marie noted that most of the tents that had occupied the village were already dismantled, so they would probably begin their march soon. “How far is it to Skykru camp?” Marie asked, as she had no idea where exactly the space ship had fallen, she only knew that it was not extremely far away from the drop ship the 100 had fallen to earth in. She was still not certain that her own definition of “not far” matched to those of the grounders yet. They could not have trained for very long, Marie estimated from the position of the sun, that it was still a few hours until midday.

“We will arrive after sunset” Lexa answered as she guided them back from the training pits to TonDC’s communal hall, as her tent would have already been dismantled by now as well.

Her orders had already been followed and Anya was lying on a pellet of furs in the communal hall guarded by two of her personal guards. Alira was waiting for the commander there as well.

“Everything is working in frame, Heda” the handmaid reported immediately at their entrance “The first groups have left two candle marks ago.”

Lexa nodded in acknowledgement and looked at Anya “Will she be alright on a horse?” she inquired with a hint of worry.

Marie looked at the commander with confusion on her face. How should Anya ride, if she was still unconscious?

Alira nodded, her face grim “Yes, the wounds have not bled again”. They could only hope that the wounds would not open due to the movements of the journey.

Lexa dismissed her with a nod and turned to Gustus “You will take Anya with you on your horse” she informed the man in a serene tone.

The burly man nodded in acceptance and motioned the guards next to Anya to bring her body outside, so that they could help him mount. Lexa had considered having Anya brought along in a cart, but it would slow them down considerably and they would have needed to leave earlier in order to arrive at the Skykru camp at sundown. They would have also needed to take a longer route to their destination, as part of the forest they would travel through was hard to navigate even for horses alone. Leaving Anya here, was also out of question as no healer would remain behind in TonDC and she also doubted that separating Marie from the general would have gone over too well.

“You are going to ride with me. The path is too bumpy for such an inexperienced rider” Lexa proclaimed and Marie just nodded. The girl would have liked to ride on her own, but she trusted the commander’s judgment and she did not want to slow them down or fall down when she overestimated her abilities.

The commander just shortly had to listen to different reports from scouts, before they could depart. It seemed, that Jaha had reached Skykru and delivered her ultimatum to his people. The scouts had heard that the order had been given to pack everything and be ready to leave their camp.

Lexa wasn’t sure if she should be disappointed that Skykru seemed to take the easy alternative and flee and in that way rob her people of their claim of blood or if she should be relieved that Skykru seemed to leave without further bloodshed. They would still move into place nonetheless, as commander she knew just how quickly plans could change and she would not blindly trust the word that Skykru would leave her lands willingly.

After the last scout was dismissed, Lexa motioned Marie to follow her outside where her black mare was already waiting for them. Gustus was also already mounted and had Anya’s unconscious form leaned against his chest on his hazelnut mount.

Lexa mounted her mare first and lifted Marie in front of her into the saddle, keeping her arms lightly around the smaller body for now. That way she could easily take a stronger hold on the girl, when the terrain became harder to travel and navigate her horse more easily.

Their group consisted only of a hand full of other warriors as most of her army travelled on foot and had already started their march hours ago. None of the warriors showed any outward reaction to the commander sharing a mount with the Sky girl and Marie let herself relax after a few moments and slightly leaned against Lexa’s chest.

“You can rest if you want, Marie” Lexa offered in a soft tone, whispering the words into the girl’s ears and pulled the girl’s body flusher against herself to have a better hold on Marie.

Marie nodded mutely and let herself be lulled into sleep gradually by the constant movements of the horse underneath her and the sounds the horses’ hooves made on the forest ground. She could also lightly sense Lexa’s strong heartbeat and her rhythmic breathing which calmed her down even more, so that it did not take long for her to fall asleep completely.

Lexa tightened the hold her arms had around the slackened body of the girl and felt Gustus disparaging glare on herself.

“It is unbecoming of the commander to cuddle a mere second not even from our clan” the guard muttered under his breath sullenly. They were far enough away from those travelling with them, so that the others could not have caught his words or Gustus would not have spoken so openly at all.

Lexa just huffed softly and rolled her eyes at the man “She is still a child and unaccustomed to our ways, Gustus” she reasoned with him lightly.

“A warrior should not let his guard down so completely on the way to battle” Gustus grumbled back, clearly still not satisfied with the girl’s antics.

Lexa looked down at the sleeping girl in her arms. The girl’s face had completely relaxed and she looked almost peaceful this way and the sight warmed her heart in a strange way “It is a sign of utter trust to let your guard down completely around others” she commented, looking over at Gustus minutely.

“Mmpphh” Gustus just huffed as a response and tightened his own grip on Anya’s body when they started to get on more difficult terrain.

Lexa just smirked at the man’s obvious irritation with her letting the girl getting this closely to her, but the girl had started to grow on her irrevocably over the course of the last days and although she was sure Gustus would not agree out loud, the child must have started to grow on him slightly as well.

 

Chapter 32

They were still moving through the woods, when Marie woke up again a few hours later. She woke to the sensation of the horseback moving beneath her body and the commander’s arms holding her in place against her chest. Lexa slackened the hold she had had on the girl’s body immediately when she woke and body retention returned to the child.

Marie blinked her eyes a few times to adjust to the darkness surrounding them. She had gotten better with seeing in near darkness, but she still wondered how all the grounders seemed to be able to see perfectly well in the dark. Her grey eyes immediately sought out Gustus, who had been riding next to the commander. Anya’s body was still slack in his arms, so Marie gathered with rising disappointment, that the woman still had to regain consciousness. From her perch in front of Lexa, Marie was unable to assess if Anya was still breathing and she leaned forward trying to peer at the woman more closely.

Lexa and Gustus both noticed the girl trying to check on Anya as soon as she had opened her eyes. It was truly astounding to watch the physical proof of just how deeply the child must have bonded to the general already.

Gustus answered the girl’s silent worry in a gruff voice. “Anya is still breathing” he informed the child.

Marie nodded with relief clearly written on her face and she softly said “Thank you” to Gustus, acknowledging his words. The burly guard just nodded and stared ahead of them with a stony expression.

Lexa was fighting against a smirk wanting to flash over her features at the little scene. It was blatantly obvious to her, that Marie truly was starting to grow on Gustus as well, despite how much the man apparently tried to stubbornly fight against it still. The girl truly acted completely different than their own children at that age did, but the girl’s easy friendliness made it hard to meet her with blank stoicism.

The commander had met Gustus very early on in her time as a novitiate. He had been a warrior in the village, Anya had brought her into after the woman had officially taken her as her second. Both of them had been constant parts of her education from that point onwards and had trained her in much more than just fighting skills. The man had always been rather gruff with her, but underneath his hard façade, she knew that Gustus had cared for her as person as well, instead of just the next potential commander to lead their people one day. She had also shared some training with one of Gustus’ daughters, Sierra, who was still on a patrolling mission around the Skykru camp and would probably report to her when they arrived at their camp.

She had come to trust the warrior so much, that directly after her ascension as the commander she had called Gustus to be her personal guard. Titus had not been pleased with her wish, preferring that she severed all ties to Trikru. But the burly man had gladly taken the offered vocation and she knew he would protect herself until breath left his body. Sierra had quickly moved on in the ranks in the army, but she was a born scout and she often resided in Polis with the commander, as they shared a deep friendship.

After a few minutes Marie picked up on the repeating sound of bird calls resonating through the woods around them. “I did not know there were that many birds in the forest” she proclaimed with a frown on her features. Her grey eyes had searched through the trees around them, but she had not spotted any birds yet.

Lexa smirked and answered simply in confirmation “There are not”. Internally, she was satisfied to see that the girl was truly starting to pay closer attention to her surroundings and began to use her head to question them as well.

Marie scrunched up her brow in rising confusion. “Then why are there so many bird calls?” she continued to question the commander, twisting around slightly to look up at the woman.

“Our warriors use them as communication” Lexa offered as an explanation with a pleased note in her voice.

Tilting her head to the side, Marie listened more closely to the sounds around them. “How do you know when it is not an actual bird calling?” she wondered out loud, a look of puzzlement marring her features.

“You cannot detect a difference?” Gustus asked from his horse with a slight snort under his breath.

Marie shortly looked over to him, before she listened more closely again to the sounds and then shook her head in the negative, her face still showing her concentration to somehow notice differences in the bird calls.

“You are not born from the trees, but you will learn” Lexa commented simply, silencing Gustus before he could make a scathing remark about the girl’s lack of knowledge on her part. The Trikru warriors had developed this art of communication a few years ago. It gave them a clear advantage fighting in the trees and communicating without detection. Just as Marie was unable to tell the difference between an actual bird call and the ones emitted from hidden warriors, clans not so familiar with the trees in Trikru territory were also unable to distinguish between them.

Marie would need to learn this form of communication as soon as she would be included in scouting missions and Lexa already thought about tasking Sierra with teaching the girl this particular skill. As one of her most trusted scouts, there would be no one better equipped to do so. She also knew that Sierra and Marie would need to get to know each other at one point and she hoped that the scout would be openminded towards the kind child. There were many different ways to communicate without detection utilizing your surroundings. The girl would need to learn them all at one point, even though she would probably need a few weeks to recognize the patterns and to school her hearing. It was not an easy skill to learn, but Marie seemed eager enough to learn that Lexa had no doubt that the child would master the skill in the future.

The rest of the way, passed without any complications and Marie still felt slightly tired, although she had already slept a few hours on horseback. The unsteady pattern she had gotten to sleep in the last days had begun to confuse her body and mind. In the Sky box their daily routines had been tightly regulated by the times, they would be given something to eat or when the inspections took place, without much to do to occupy her mind during her time in prison, Marie had also slept away a huge portion of the day out of utter boredom.

Marie at first did not even recognize that they had arrived at the camp, the army had started to erect. She only realized that they must have reached their destination, when Lexa and Gustus both slowed their horses don and she noted the presence of other warriors around them. The warriors were all working in complete darkness and now that she knew what to look for, Marie could even see that some tents had already been erected and she thought that she might see the outline of the commander’s big tent slightly uphill from their current position.

Gustus and Lexa steered their horses in directly that direction. When they had gotten a slight distance uphill, Marie could see the brightly illuminated silhouette of the Ark standing out starkly in the darkness in the distance.

“That’s not the whole Ark” Marie told Lexa with a frown “The Ark was at least five times this size.”

Gustus and Lexa shared a silent glance before Lexa answered “So, there might be other parts scattered somewhere else?” she mused thoughtfully.

Marie shrugged her shoulders. She had no idea how the Ark had come down to earth and Marcus and Thelonious had not spoken about any other parts of the Ark. “I don’t know, but I guess it is possible” Marie hypothesized, while Lexa brought her horse to a sudden stop in front of her tent.

Three younger warriors immediately approached them. Two of them immediately helped Gustus by taking Anya’s body off his hands, so that the burly guard could dismount.

The third one received Lexa’s reins and the commander quickly dismounted in one fluid motion, before she held her arms up to help Marie down the big animal as well.

The commander afterwards motioned to one of the guards around her tent to give “the signal”. Marie had no idea, what signal the woman might have meant, until the guard mimicked another bird and the warriors closest to the Ark started to light up torches, they had all been carrying.

Marie swallowed thickly, because of the mighty picture the army must form from Skykru’s perspective. It did not take long until shouts from the Ark could be heard, floating over towards them in the night. So, Skykru had finally noticed their appearance. Marie silently wondered, how they could have been oblivious to a whole army building camp around them, even through the darkness they should have noticed something was off. She would have expected the guard from the Ark to have been on constant high alert and it did not speak too highly of their skills, that they just had noticed the army now.

Additionally, Marie thought that Lexa was correct in her assumption, no matter how many guns the guard from Skykru might actually have, they would not be able to win against this huge army outnumbering them so greatly.

The girl followed Gustus and Lexa into the commander’s tent and saw that the guards had already laid Anya down onto the commander’s bed. Alira entered the tent carrying another bowl of broth and she watched worriedly how the woman again forced the broth down Anya’s throat. Marie watched her intently the whole time and thought that Anya might look the slightest bit less pale already, but she internally hoped that she was not just imagining this by wishful thinking.

In the meantime, Lexa was listening to the progress of the camp Indra had come to report on. Everything had gone according to plan and Skykru apparently had not detected her army until the torches had been lit. Lexa had to agree to Indra’s notion that Skykru were obviously like helpless children in many ways. But she knew how dangerous even children could become when they were frightened and had the means to protect themselves. Those fearing for their own lives and those they loved with no way out, tended to be the most dangerous and desperate enemies.

That was the main reason, why she had decided to march on Skykru even though it seemed as if they wanted to flee from her lands. If there was no need for an attack tomorrow at dawn, then they had at least done some military exercises and made sure that the smaller villages in the vicinity were protected.

She dismissed both Alira and Indra and sent Gustus to stand guard at the entry of her tent afterwards. Lexa already felt the anticipation of tomorrow’s potential battle flooding through her veins and she felt strangely antsy.

The commander removed her swords from her back and unbuckled her shoulder pauldron and placed the heavy peace of armour on one of the tables in the tent. Marie had also shrugged out of her coat and had discarded it on a stool in the corner.

Marie thought that the commander looked relatively tired as well and she just realized now, that the woman probably had not slept at all during the previous night. The commander’s bed was still occupied with Anya and she internally wondered where the woman planned to sleep and when Lexa ordered her to lay down again to get some more rest only a few moments later, Marie answered in a hesitant tone “You should try to get some sleep as well”.

Lexa glared at the impertinent girl lightly, her patience thinned with rising exhaustion and the impending day. Her gaze softened when she noticed that the girl had just wanted to be considerate again and offered in a calmer tone instead “We can lie down together”. It would not make for an ideal sleeping position, but the girl was correct, she needed to rest as well.

Marie immediately nodded her head in mute agreement and they squeezed under the girl’s fur together a short moment later. It was a bit cramped and not truly comfortable, but they both fell asleep quickly. It would not be long now before dawn and they would either have to attack or retreat back to TonDC.

The guards scattered around their camp had the clear orders to wake the commander as soon as there was any news, so Lexa could afford to get some rest now as long as it was still possible.

Cuddled tightly against Lexa, Marie’s dreams were thankfully peaceful and they were woken shortly before first light by a guard announcing that Sierra and Indra wanted to come by shortly later to make their reports.

Lexa instantly woke up at first sounds from the guard outside her tent and quickly entangled herself from Marie, who was now slowly waking up as well.

The commander ordered one of the guards to fetch Alira for her to re-braid her hair as some had become loose again in sleep. Lexa hurriedly washed up and was in the process of applying new war paint to her face, when Alira entered with a tray of light breakfast.

The woman handed a mug with steaming tea to Lexa and motioned for the commander to sit on a stool to be able to reach her hair more easily. Alira quickly opened all the braids and gently combed out the thick brown locks, before she started to re-create the intricate design the commander usually wore.

Marie had also washed up by now and slipped the boots back on her feet and stepped back from behind the curtain into the main area of the tent. She had already made certain that Anya was in fact still breathing.

The girl greeted Alira with a soft smile and the handmaid nodded back at the child and motioned for her to take some of the food from the tray. Marie sat down on a chair in the other corner after taking a few thin slices of dried meat and started to chew on the dried food in silence, simply watching the handmaid work on the commander’s hair. She internally wondered why the leader had such an intricate and impractical design for her hair at all, but she could guess that the degree of how intricate the hair was done could show a certain amount of power as well; she highly doubted that a normal warrior would have access to a handmaid to help with their hair.

After Alira had finished with Lexa’s hair, she checked on Anya and forced some more liquid into the woman and lastly checked if Marie’s hair was presentable still and was dismissed afterwards.

Lexa firstly called Sierra into the tent after she had finished with her own quick breakfast. The woman immediately entered, faltering in her steps slightly when she spotted the blonde Sky girl in the tent.

Marie had so far not met the young warrior and was a bit surprised to see the stranger react so distrustfully to her. The woman had dark long braided hair and dark eyes that seemed to gleam murderously at her for a moment, before she focused her attention on Lexa.

The commander also wasn’t pleased to note Sierra’s reaction to Marie but let it pass for now only listening to her short report. The scout and her group had been tasked with watching the woods surrounding the Ark and the woman reported, that no one had passed by them. Lexa furrowed her brow as this direction would have been most likely taken by Skykru to leave her lands. But the commander just nodded and dismissed Sierra. She could see from the corner of her eyes how Marie relaxed again immediately after the scout had left them alone.

Indra was called into the tent just as the sun was starting to rise as Marie could see through the material of the tent and Sierra had left.

“Heda” the general greeted with a reverent nod.

Lexa answered with her own curt mute nod and sat down on her throne.

Marie threw a chirped “Morning” in from the side, which Indra did not dignify with an answer at all. The dark-skinned warrior only scowled at the child, before her eyes returned to the commander.

Lexa wondered why the child was obviously in such a good mood, but focused her attention on Indra instead.

“Heda, Skykru has not left in the night” Indra reported, voice laced with anger as her hand tightly gripped the hilt of her sword.

Lexa clenched her teeth in silent anger. The commander could see the smile on the girl’s face being frozen in place and her grey eyes widening.

“I thought they had planned to leave” Marie said in a small voice looking almost dejected at the news. Internally, Marie feared what would happen now. Anya had told her before they had marched against the other delinquents, that she was not nearly ready to partake in an actual attack. Would she be required to be part of the army now? She knew that the army would have to face the guards with their guns and she shuddered to imagine just how many warriors would die, before they could actually reach their enemy to slay them with their swords. She was aware that the army also possessed bows, but she could not imagine that they could be compared fairly to the efficiency of a gun.

Indra glared at the girl for a second, probably affronted that the child chipped her opinion in between the general’s report.  “Obviously they changed their plan” she commented in a brisk tone.

Lexa had taken a dagger from a sheath on her thigh and was twirling the blade between her fingers, deep in thought.

“The warriors await your command, Heda” Indra said in a meaningful voice, when Lexa remained silent with a contemplative expression.

The commander merely nodded as a mute response. She had hoped to circumvent an actual attack by marching on the Skykru camp. The girl’s words still ringing in her ears loudly. Marie was correct, they would suffer heavy losses if she made her army attack. The commander was sure she would be victorious, but she had to consider the price for their possible victory as well.

Before Lexa actually said anything, shouts could be heard through the camp of the army. Someone from the Skykru camp was approaching and demanded an audience with the commander.

Lexa jutted her chin out, she had to give whoever was on their way to approach her credit for bravery. It was risky to march into an enemy’s camp like this. Gustus shortly stepped into the tent, asking if the invader should be killed on the spot or actually allowed to pass.

Marie watched as Lexa continued to play around with the dagger in her hand, contemplative for a few moments, before her green eyes set on Gustus and she said in a dangerous voice “Let them pass.”

 

Chapter 33

Marie listened on as Gustus spoke to whoever had demanded an audience “If you so much as look at her the wrong way, I will slight your throat.” The man’s deathly calm voice sent a shiver through Marie’s frame and she hoped that he would never threaten her in such a fashion. Internally, she wondered frantically who would be entering the tent now.

There was no response from whoever was with him and then the tent was held open by Gustus only a short moment later.

Lexa had positioned herself almost relaxed on her throne. Her legs crossed over each other casually and she lazily spun a dagger on the tip of her index finger, not even looking up from the dagger to see who had entered the tent. The way the commander was almost playing around with the dagger did seem weird even to Marie’s eyes, she was sure that she would have already cut her own fingers, if she were to attempt the same.

To Marie’s utter surprise, it was Clarke who had demanded an audience and strode into the tent, head held high and proud. Marie scrunched up her brow in confusion. Sure, Clarke had had authority over the other delinquents, but with return of adults from the Ark, she had been convinced that surely one of them would now hold the power in the Skykru camp.

Marie could see that Clarke had some obvious wounds on her face, as if she had recently fought with someone and she could see that the older girl was desperately trying to appear calm and brave. Her blue eyes widened almost comically, when she spotted Marie standing next to Lexa’s throne, she had obviously not expected to see the younger girl here or ever again for that matter.

“You’re the one who had burnt three hundred of my warriors alive” Lexa said in an almost casual tone, still fiddling with her dagger. Marie could see the commander only looking up after she had pronounced the last word and she was looked down at Clarke expectantly.

“You’re the one who sent them there to kill us” Clarke answered almost accusingly, not wavering under the other woman’s gaze.

Lexa pushed the tip of her dagger onto the armrest of her throne with a loud clinking sound and asked “Do you have an answer for me, Clarke of the Sky people?” The commander silently noted, that the blonde girl obviously had courage and she held her place even under her glare. A feat not all the other clan leaders could accomplish. Lexa still had to determine if the young woman actually had the bravery and self-confidence she displayed or was just arrogantly stupid.

Clarke instantly replied, in an even voice “I have come to make you an offer”.

Lexa subtly shook her head and answered with a determined tone “This is not a negotiation” her tone left little room for discussion.

“Let me kill her and get this over with” Indra interjected, speaking up for the first time now from the other side of Lexa’s throne.

Lexa just lazily held up her hand to silence Indra’s offer and Clarke spoke up again “I can help you beat the Mountain Men” conviction in her tone and blue eyes.

Lexa took the blade back between her hands caressing over the steel almost gently, expression contemplative “Go on” she urged the other woman.

“Hundreds of your people are trapped inside Mount Weather in cages. Their blood is used as medicine” Clarke explained in an honest tone.

“How do you know this?” Lexa questioned in a steely voice, leaning slightly forwards. No one had ever left the Mountain alive, maybe besides Anya now, but as the woman had not woken up yet, they did not yet know what had actually happened to her general.

“Because I saw them. My people are prisoners there to” Clarke continued quickly “I was one of them”.

“Lies” Indra spat from the side “No one escapes the Mountain”. Lexa knew that Indra had lost her husband and a son to the Mountain and the Reapers, so the woman was always a little more impatient when it came to the Mountain.

“I did” Clarke claimed hotly “With Anya. We fought our way out together.”

Marie barely was able to bite her tongue, before she said anything at the mention of Anya. She desperately wanted to ask Clarke on what had happened and who had shot Anya, but she knew that interrupting now would probably be a mistake, so she swallowed her questions down.

“Is that so?” Lexa questioned her eyes drilling into Clarke’s. It sounded as if Clarke was not aware that Anya had made it back to them then. She contemplated the blonde woman for a silent moment, it did not help to portray Skykru in a good light, if the woman might have actually been the one to wound Anya during their escape. It did sound slightly reasonable that they could have truly been inside of the Mountain, as the trail had shown into the direction of the Mountain. 

Clarke put a hand in the pocket of her jacket and made to grab something from it. All the guards around Lexa, also made a grab for their weapons ready to defend their commander, probably expecting the woman to try to kill their leader.

Marie watched as Clarke retrieved a piece of a braid from the pocket of her jacket and had to fight hard against the instinct to check on Anya’s hair, if there was a braid missing.

“She told me you were her second” Clarke said and stepped forward and handed the braid over to Lexa “I am sure she would want you to have this” she continued in an emotional tone. Whatever had transpired between the two women, had obviously left a lasting impression on Clarke.

“We don’t know it’s hers” Indra said in an angry tone. All occupants of the tent beside Clarke were aware that Anya was still lying unconscious on the commander’s bed after all. Marie looked at Lexa in confusion, wondering silently why the commander did not tell Clarke that the woman had made it back.

“Be quiet Indra” Lexa commanded the general in a clipped tone, inspecting the braid in her hands for a short moment. So, Marie remained quite as well. Lexa must think to gain something from not telling her about Anya now.

“Anya was my mentor before I was called to lead my people” Lexa told Clarke in an even voice and laid the braid down on the armrest next to her “Did she die well?” she inquired with intent green eyes.

Marie saw that the commander had not looked directly at Clarke, when asking after Anya’s death and waited with baited breath for Clarke’s answer; she sensed that the way Clarke answered the question was very important.

“Yes” Clarke simply said “By my side. Trying to get a message to you” she spoke quicker at the last part, emphasising it.

Lexa looked back at Clarke, expression stony. Marie had been able to see a flash of annoyance in the commander’s eyes, before she redirected her gaze to Clarke and had them carefully blank again.

“What message?” the commander asked in a clipped tone.

“The only way if we want to safe both our people, is to join together” Clarke declared in a confident voice, her blue eyes bearing into Lexa’s.

“Those who are about to die will say anything” Indra interjected again and Marie had to silently agree with her. All of them were aware that Clarke had just outright lied Lexa in the face. But maybe the older girl was just unaware that Anya had survived, but then the question would be why she had not helped the injured woman?

“I am still waiting for an offer, Clarke” Lexa spoke with finality in her voice. Her patience was obviously running thin. Internally, she was irritated that the blonde woman had lied to her like this, making it harder to believe anything which came out of her mouth.

“The Mountain Men are turning your people into Reapers” Clarke said “I can turn them back” she claimed with confidence.

“Impossible” Indra snarled “Commander, I beg you let me kill her.” Indra’s patience seemed to run out as well.

“I have done it with Lincoln” Clarke declared with urgency in her voice as Lexa raised her brows.

Indra marched towards Clarke gripping her sword “The traitor is the reason my village was slaughtered by your people …” Marie had known that Lincoln was bound to be punished harshly, if he ever returned to one of the Trikru villages; he had blatantly ignored an order from Anya and instead helped Finn and Clarke escaped. She had heard later, that the man had led Reapers to the battle field with the Sky children, diverting the army’s attention from the other delinquents.

“Indra” Lexa tried to call Indra down, voice still relatively calm, but the woman was too enraged to listen.

“Enough” Lexa loudly commanded and stood up from her throne, while Indra was glaring daggers at Clarke. The dark-skinned warrior might have stopped in her tracks, but the anger still blazed in her dark eyes.

Lexa moved from her throne right in front of Clarke and stared her into her blue eyes searching for truth in them “You say you can turn Reapers back into men” she repeated the woman’s bold statement.

“Yes” Clarke nodded in agreement, not faltering in the commander’s strong presence and keeping her ground.

“Then prove it” Lexa snarled at the other girl through clenched teeth “Show me Lincoln” she demanded coldly.

Marie could see the blonde girl swallowing heavily, but she nodded nonetheless and she did stand her ground against Lexa’s stare without wavering.

Gustus led Clarke out of the tent by her arm only a moment later.

“Commander, with all due respect it could be a trap” Indra tried to convince Lexa not to listen to Clarke’s words or at least to hinder the woman to inspect Lincoln herself and sent someone else instead.

Lexa looked contemplative for a moment, before she turned to Marie “Do you think your technology could do something like that?” she questioned intently. The child would be the best equipped to judge this.

Marie shrugged with a helpless expression “I don’t know what Reapers are exactly and I am no doctor. But I know that the Ark has different medical technology than Trikru possesses.”

“We will go with Clarke and observe Lincoln. Removing the Reapers would weaken the Mountain considerably” Lexa proclaimed after another moment of silent contemplation. She could not deny the chance that she was walking into a trap, but the advantages of the blonde’s words, if they were true, could not be ignored either.

Indra huffed silently, but nodded and left the tent to wait with Gustus and Clarke and to gather more guards to accompany them. It was not her place to question the commander, if a decision had been made.

“Why haven’t you told her of Anya?” Marie asked the commander in a low voice, the question still on the forefront of her mind as her gaze flitted to the curtain concealing Anya.

Lexa smirked at the girl “To judge honesty in your opponent is always important and having more information can give you an advantage later.” The girl would need to mind her tongue in public, but it appeared that the child was already beginning to understand when she could question her on something and when to keep silent. She had noticed the child fidgeting in place, as soon as Clarke had mentioned Anya and she had half expected the girl to intervene.

Marie nodded silently biting at her lips and trying to make sense of the words.

“Come” Lexa ordered having decided that the girl would also be accompanying them.

Lexa surveyed the group who was going to guard them. Beside from Gustus, Indra and Marie, six additional warriors were waiting. Their faces all hidden beneath different masks, she recognized Sierra under one of them.

The commander nodded and motioned Clarke to proceed them and lead the way towards where they were keeping Lincoln.

They did not speak a single word with each other on the way. Marie soon recognized that Clarke was leading them towards the drop ship and her heart sped up a bit. She had not been to the drop ship since she had separated from the other delinquents to follow John into the forest.

The reports about the battle had clearly said that the delinquents had made the drop ship emit flames that burned the warriors outside of the drop ship. Marie was afraid what such a place would look like now. The scene had been manufactured in some of her nightmares through pure imagination already and her imagination had made it look bad enough, that she feared that the reality of it could be even more gruesome.

It did not take them long to reach the drop ship and Marie’s fears were confirmed. The earth around the drop ship was black with soot and bones and skulls of the burnt warriors lay scattered in front of the drop ship. She could also see a few pieces of burnt metal, glinting under the soot. It might have been pieces of armour or even weapons, which had melted. The heat must have been incredibly high for the metal to melt in such a fashion, Marie was fairly certain that all of the warriors would have died quickly.

Marie could see all of the warriors clenching their teeth at the sight, while Lexa looked around with an almost mournful expression in her green eyes.

Clarke had picked up on the oppressive mood and directed in a slightly shaky voice “This way”.

Marie dearly hoped that there were no armed guards waiting for them inside of the drop ship, as she had also thought that the location might be almost perfect to use as a trap.

Lexa just swallowed and followed Clarke with the others into the interior of the drop ship. Marie was slightly relieved that the drop ship appeared to be empty.

Clarke climbed up the ladder up to the second part of the drop ship first, followed by Gustus and then Lexa.

The first things Marie registered after stepping from the ladder was Clarke looking slightly shocked. Octavia kneeled next to Lincoln who appeared to be dead and was crying while Bellamy obviously tried to comfort his sister. Marie recognized Clarke’s mother Abby Griffin shaking her head at her daughter with a desperate expression.

Lexa surveyed the situation for a moment, before she gave a nod to Indra and simultaneously pulled Marie behind herself to shield the girl’s body.

“I’ll kill them all” Indra snarled and unsheathed her sword in sync with the other warriors just as Bellamy took up the automatic gun lying next to him on the floor and raised the weapon aiming for Lexa.

All of them froze in place as nearly everyone was the aim of one weapon or the other.

“Please” Clarke started to intervene trying desperately to calm the situation “You don’t have to do this”

“You lied” Lexa accused seething “And you are out of time” she surmised, gripping her own sword in a tighter grip, preparing on who to attack first.

In an obviously last effort Abby made a grab for a shock stick lying on the floor and shocked Lincoln with it two times before the man started to breathe again and opened his eyes.

Clarke looked as surprised about the fact that it had worked to revive Lincoln as Indra and Lexa did.

Octavia crawled over to Lincoln’s form instantly and he whispered her name. Tears of relief ran down Octavia’s cheeks, as she bent down and pressed a wet kiss to Lincoln’s lips.

Lexa sheathed her own weapon again. No healer from their people had ever managed to cure a Reaper so far. Reapers were unable to talk, so that the warrior was coherent again was enough evidence to know that whatever Skykru had done had indeed worked. Lexa was aware of just how many of her people had already been lost to the Mountain, to return as Reapers. Their numbers seemed to have grown in the last years and they became bolder, it would not be long until she expected the first Reapers to try and raid the villages closest to the Mountain.

Clarke looked more relieved than she should have been, if she had been as sure this would work as she had claimed before.

Abby just now seemed to really look around the others who had come with Clarke. Her eyes widened when she recognized Marie behind the commander. “Marie?” she asked disbelief clear in her voice “Marie Matthews?”

Marie stood a bit taller and nodded mutely stepping up next to Lex, instead of behind her, now that the threat was obviously gone for now.

“We had no idea you were still alive” Abby spoke, still clearly amazed and Marie did not like the way Abby looked over her form and took in her clothing and hair with disdainful eyes. “She is a child from the Ark” Abby directed her words to Lexa purely now “As chancellor of the Ark, I demand you hand her and Marcus Kane over back to us”

Lexa would have nearly laughed the impertinent woman in the face, but just fixed her with a challenging glare “You will get the one you call Marcus Kane back upon my return to camp” she agreed.

“And the girl” Abby continued again “You cannot keep her against her will!” voice rising with each word.

Indra and Gustus were both already gripping the hilts of their swords. Not one of their generals would have presumed to talk with the commander in such a way and expect to keep their tongues to tell the tale.

“Marie is no concern of yours any longer” Lexa simply said, green eyes hard and expression unyielding “She belongs to us now”.

Marie let out a breath, she had not noticed to hold that the commander was backing her here. She had not even been aware, that she was still slightly afraid that the grounders would cast her out at the first opportunity.

Abby seemed intent to say more, but Clarke stopped her “Mom, enough” she interrupted and shook her head vehemently.

Lexa looked between both of them for a moment, before she gave Clarke a short nod and motioned for her warriors to leave the metal contraption. “You will accompany us to our camp, Clarke” Lexa told the blonde woman.

Abby opened her mouth again “Clarke is not the chancellor of us” she reasoned, clearly intent on taking her daughter’s place.

Lexa returned her gaze to Abby and stared her down for a moment “Clarke was the one asking for an audience, so she will be the one hearing my requirements for a truce”.

“It’s ok” Clarke told Abby and motioned to the commander to proceed her and that she would follow shortly.

Abby obviously wanted to talk again to Marie, so Lexa ordered the girl to climb down the ladder in front of her, so that she efficiently blocked contact.

 

Chapter 34

Marie was internally grateful when they finally left the drop ship behind them and walked back to the camp of the army. She had not liked the way Abby had looked at her and spoken about her at all and she somehow sensed, that the woman had not given up getting her back to Skykru yet. She also worried how Anya was doing, they had been gone from the camp for some time now and she was eager to return and check on the wounded woman, hoping internally that she had already woken up during their absence.

Clarke followed the commander and her warriors silently. Lexa was also silent and thought about what she needed from Skykru to satisfy her warriors’ thirst for blood. Skykru had slaughtered 18 innocent villagers and that could not go unanswered. The deaths had not happened on a battle field, but had truly been the doing of an assassin. She did not particularly care for the reasons of the assassin and she knew that her people waiting for their righteous revenge would also not.

She hoped that the Sky people would understand the difference between vengeance and justice. From what Marie had told her about “floating”, Lexa had gathered that Skykru were not unfamiliar with death penalty. There could be no lasting truce between their people before justice had been served. The chances to finally fell the Mountain had never been this high before, but Lexa knew that she would need to tread carefully from now on. Skykru had not proven to be trustworthy and even after retribution had been payed, the peace between the coalition and Skykru would be shaky at best.

Although the clans would certainly be able to sympathise with Skykru’s need to protect themselves and by thus explaining some of what had transpired, Lexa was certain that the clans would not understand that Skykru had sent unskilled children to the earth first. In her opinion it truly showed for the cowardice of Skykru that they had deemed their children expendable enough to sent them into unknown territory, not even giving them the skills and means to sustain and protect themselves.

The walk back towards the army’s camp was quick and quiet. Lexa’s warriors nodding with a reverent “Heda” when they saw her return.

The commander led Marie and Clarke directly into her tent. Gustus had again taken post at the entrance of the tent and Indra had left to be with her warriors, reorganizing them, now that they were not attack immediately.

Marie followed both Lexa and Clarke and took position slightly behind the commander waiting for a command on what to do, although she itched to slip behind the curtain to the sleeping part of the tent and finally be able to convince herself that Anya was still there and breathing.

Clarke also waited for Lexa to begin to speak, not sure how to begin peace talks.

“Lincoln’s recovery was …” Lexa said and waited for a moment as if searching for the right word “impressive. No one has ever survived such a fate before” she let her pleased surprise show slightly in her eyes.

Marie could hear how genuinely pleased Lexa was with the fact, that they now could save Reapers and silently she wondered if the commander had lost people she cared about to that fate before. She had heard from Anya, that nearly all the grounders who lived in proximity to the Mountain had lost someone in their families to the Mountain over the years. Now that she thought about it, she actually had no idea about Lexa’s past other than the fact that she had been trained early on for her role and had been Anya’s second before.

“It’s not complicated really” Clarke answered “You just have to keep them alive long enough for the drug to leave their system. I know we can do the same for others.”

The blonde’s words resonated with conviction although Marie thought saving Lincoln had been more dumb luck than anything else.

Lexa nodded and looked contemplative for a moment before she spoke again in a slightly softer voice “You may have your truce.”

Clarke looked genuinely relieved to hear the words spoken out loud and thanked the commander.

Lexa’s face turned harder again “I just need one thing in return” she said. There would be no peace before retribution had been payed by Skykru.

“Tell me” Clarke said promptly, sounding sure that she could do whatever the commander might ask of her. Marie had a suspicion as to what Lexa would ask for. If she understood one thing about the grounders, it was that Finn would not come out of the whole ordeal unscathed. She had heard already that murderers were punished by death by a thousand cuts and although she hoped that it would not be exactly as the phrase implied, she could already imagine that it was not the quickest way to die.

Lexa’s voice turned steely again and she fixed Clarke with her strong eyes “Deliver me the one you call Finn.”

Marie could see Clarke pale at the words.

“Our truce begins with his death” Lexa finished with finality in her voice. Marie knew that no matter what else Skykru might offer, it would not be enough to appease the grounders. She knew that the commander could have as well asked for eighteen people of Skykru instead of asking only for Finn.

Clarke looked at the commander with wide eyes, obviously searching for anything in her green eyes that might give her a chance to sway the fierce leader. But Lexa held her stare impassively. The commander knew, that she could not relent on that condition as her people would see her as weak if she spared the murderer’s life. As commander, Lexa was sworn to do everything to protect her people and bringing them justice belonged to her duties. She would surely have to pay with her own blood, if she failed to do so.

Marie thought Clarke looked as if she was lost for words and tried desperately to come up with something to say. Before Clarke could find the right words to plead for Finn’s life, Marie could hear a slight coughing noise from behind the curtain were Anya was still lying.

The commander had also heard and ordered to Gustus “Escort Clarke back to her camp. Sent two riders with her to wait for the murderer” urgency underlaying her tone.

“You will go back to your camp and hand over the one you call Finn” Lexa said to Clarke her eyes blazing accentuated by the coal around her eyes “If your people refuse to give the murderer up, there will be no truce and I will call war on your camp at nightfall tomorrow”.

Gustus had stepped up behind Clarke and gripped her biceps to direct her out of the tent, the blonde looked at the commander with pleading eyes, struggling against the man’s grip already “Commander, please…”

But Lexa nodded to Gustus and he forcibly dragged the young woman from the tent.

Marie waited until Gustus had dragged Clarke out of the entrance of the tent and immediately hurried behind the curtain to the bed.

Anya moved slightly under the furs and her face was distorted in a grimace as if she was in a great amount of pain.

“Is she waking up, Lexa?” Marie asked with worried grey eyes, hovering beside the bed. The girl would have liked to take Anya’s hand again, but she did not want to startle the woman or restrain her movements.

The commander motioned for another guard outside the entrance “Fetch Alira” she ordered immediately, before she returned to her bed. Lexa was also intently observing Anya as they waited for Alira to appear “It would appear so” she answered the girl’s question vaguely. She was no healer and could not truly judge that.

Marie looked up at Lexa, having kneeled down next to the bed and saw the commander’s green eyes flashing with worry as well.

The handmaid arrived only a few moments later, slightly out of breath as if she had hurried to reach the commander’s tent.

The older woman shooed Marie out of the way and Lexa pulled the girl in front of her own body by her shoulder, so that she would not obstruct Alira’s reach at all.

Marie felt herself relax despite her excitement at the strong physical presence of the commander behind her.

They both watched in tense silence how Alira checked Anya’s temperature and inspected the gunshot wound. She also laid her hand on the other woman’s throat to feel her pulse.

“The wound is healing well” Alira said to the commander “Her pulse has grown stronger again. It won’t be long until she wakes” she surmised and her eyes looked reassuringly at the deeply worried child.

Lexa nodded and dismissed the handmaid again. There was no use in having her wait at Anya’s bedside as well. She was sure Marie would want to wait until Anya finally woke up anyway. It had been apparent before, that the girl had not wished to leave the wounded woman out of her sight and she sensed that convincing Marie to do so now, would even be harder.

Night had fallen around them and Lexa knew that there would be no more training with the girl tonight. She highly doubted that Skykru would be giving up their murderer quickly, a part of her exactly already expected their denial to hand him over at all. Nonetheless, she would let her warriors erect a tree for his execution now.

“You can stay with her” Lexa told Marie who flashed her a grateful smile. They had discussed previously that as a second it would be expected of her to be at the commander’s site at all times, but Lexa still had to organize her official appointment.

When Anya finally woke, they would need to discuss how to deal with the fact that Marie now officially had two mentors. She had declared, that she would take on the girl as a second, so she would need to keep her word now. Her own claim on Marie would easily outrank Anya’s claim, but Lexa had no intention of separating the girl from the general. Although Lexa had previously sent Anya away from herself shortly after Costia had been murdered, she was inclined to call her back to Polis now.

Depending on what Skykru chose to do now, Lexa already planned to have Marie officially initiated into Trikru the day after the murderer’s execution. Now that Skykru’s chancellor had already declared her intention to get the child back, it was even more important to carry out the initiation as soon as possible. It was more than obvious, that Marie had no intention of returning to Skykru and she would certainly not force the child either. If Marie were to express her wish to return, Lexa would need to think of something to make it possible for her, but it was better for all of them, if the child remained.

Lexa swept out of the tent closely followed by Gustus, leaving Marie at Anya’s side.

“Two warriors wait in front of the Skykru’s gate for the murderer” Gustus reported and Lexa nodded although she doubted that their wait would be effective.

Marie had taken to kneeling next to Anya again. The woman had started to wreathe under the furs as if she was trying to get away from invisible restraints and she was muttering something unintelligible under her breath. Watching the woman like this, felt utterly wrong and Marie wished for nothing more than for Anya to finally wake up. Feeling utterly helpless without anything to do to help the woman, Marie felt completely forlorn.

After a few minutes of watching on helplessly, as Anya clearly suffered Marie hesitantly laid her hand over Anya’s who had started to claw at the furs under her fingers.

Instantly, when her skin made contact with Anya’s hand the woman’s brown eyes shot open. Marie reeled back in shock, as Anya nearly shot upright in one sudden motion. Her brown eyes were widened and filled with absolute horror and pain and she seemed unable to really recognize her surroundings.

“Anya?” Marie hesitantly tried to get the other woman’s attention, staying on her knees in front of the bed and looked at the woman with a storm of emotion raging through her mind. She had expected to only feel relief, when the woman woke up, but Anya’s state had shocked her deeply. She immediately wondered just what must have been to the otherwise so stoic woman, to reduce her to such a state of primal panic.

Anya’s brown eyes instantly snapped to her and she blinked a few times finally able to really see. Anya’s mind had been filled with total panic when she woke and could not recognize where she was. Memories of waking up in the Mountain flashing up in front of her eyes.

The furs around her body had felt as if something was restraining her and as she shot upright a blinding pain resonated through her abdomen. The woman gasped and her breathing was exhilarated, but as she felt the furs under her fingers her mind instantly registered, that she could not be in the Mountain nor in Skykru’s camp.

Her mind flashed with memories and the last moments she could remember clearly, came back to her rapidly. She had clasped arms with Clarke from Skykru and wanted to depart to find the commander and try to negotiate peace between both her people, when a shot had suddenly rung through the air.

“Anya?” Marie asked again in a shaky voice with tears gathering in her grey eyes. The woman was frightening her with her uncharacteristic behaviour and the lack of response was only putting her on edge.

Anya closed her eyes for a moment as more memories came back to her and when she opened them again, she found the worried eyes of her second looking back at her, glistening with tears.

“Yes” she rasped out through a painful throat. Her throat was sore and dry and her voice gruff from disuse for an unknown time. Anya had no idea on just how long she had been unconscious, her body felt weirdly heavy and weak, so she knew that it must have been several days.

“Oh Anya…” Marie choked out through her tears, now freely flowing down her cheeks as her relieve overwhelmed the girl at finally seeing Anya conscious again.

Anya tried to calm her rapid breathing and tried to push the memories of the Mountain and the horrors she had seen there to the back of her mind and painfully rasped out “Water…”

Marie instantly jumped up “Of course” and in her haste she nearly tripped over her own feet which earned her an almost amused sounding snort from Anya.

She quickly poured a cup of water from a jug on one of the tables and hastily hurried back to the bed, where Anya was slowly and obviously painfully lowering herself back onto the furs. In her hurry, Marie slushed some of the water over the rim of the cup and onto her clothes, but she barely registered that.

Annoyance flashed through Anya’s brown eyes, when Marie held the cups to the woman’s lips and refused to let go of it intent on helping the woman.

“Go and get the commander, Marie” Anya said in a strained voice, after she had drained the whole cup awfully slowly. As thirsty as she still felt, Anya would have liked to drain the whole jug, but she knew that she would do no good to her body that way.

Thankfully, Marie nodded immediately in agreement and instantly stood up with only a short glance over her shoulder, as if to make sure that Anya was still awake and she had not just imagined everything.

Anya tried to let her body relax against the furs. Now that she was alone in the tent, the memories forcefully pushed back into her mind. Although her skin felt cleaned of the mud, the woman still felt her skin crawling from the treatment she had been subjected to by the Mountain Men. Anya clenched her jaw closed almost painfully and forced herself to think of something else, wondering where exactly they were and how much time might have passed since she had been shot. She wondered if Clarke had attempted to get an audience with the commander and she grimaced at the thought. She had failed her commander on every account.

Gingerly, she felt over the bandage covering the wound on her torso. The wound hurt like hell and the feeling of being shot flashed through her mind. She had never experienced a pain like that, so sudden and surprising in its intensity.

Carefully, Anya tried to move her limbs one by one and noted relieved that she had full control over her limbs, even though she felt strangely week and heavy. Her fingers looked almost spindly against the furs, as they seemed to have thinned and she was not as gaunt as she felt.

She wondered if Lexa had had her army attack on Skykru already or if there was still a chance to work with them to bring an end to the Mountain.

It took Marie some frantic searching through the camp, to finally locate the commander. Thankfully, none of the warriors tried to approach her, although she was aware that most of their eyes followed her every step as she hurried through the camp, all thought of proper protocol forgotten for now.

Lexa heard the muttering of her warriors, before she saw the girl hastily approaching her. The commander dismissed the general she had been speaking to and went to meet the girl halfway.

“She’s awake” Marie hastily reported to Lexa and barely refrained from taking the commander’s arm and hurrying her back to her tent.

Lexa smirked and motioned the girl to proceed her “Then hurry along” she directed in an amused tone. As the commander, she could not be seen running through the camp like the child could and she watched on in amusement as the girl scurried back obediently, while Gustus who had accompanied her just rolled his eyes at the child’s obviously overexcited antics.

 

Chapter 35

Marie had hurried back into the tent and the noises she made in her haste, startled Anya awake again who had begun to fall back asleep.

The woman’s wide brown eyes searched the tent for a few moments, before she realized that Marie alone had woken her.  “Where is the commander?” Anya asked in a tired voice, reflecting the strain on her body.

“She’s coming” Marie reassured the woman quickly and kneeled back down next to the bed. Her grey eyes were searching Anya’s face intently, she could still not truly believe that she was actually looking at the woman and finally able to speak with her again as well.

They did not have to wait long for Lexa to arrive. Gustus stayed outside of the tent again to stand post at the entrance.

Marie could see relieve flickering through Lexa’s green eyes, when the commander saw Anya awake with her own eyes.

“I am glad to see you awake again, Anya” the commander said and her eyes were swimming in emotion. Lexa knew that their relationship had been strained in the last years. After Costia’s head had been delivered to her bed, she had finally heeded Titus’ advice and sent those away that still held personal ties to her. Anya had not been understanding of her decision to ban her from her personal council and sent her to a small village near TonDC and the woman had seen the order as a punishment, Lexa was sure of that. The commander had not seen her former mentor for some time before the Sky children fell from the sky and reports of them had called her to TonDC. Lexa had expected their interactions to be strained with undissolved tension, as she would not apologize to Anya for her previous decision. It was actually Marie, who had made them reconnect effortlessly and Lexa had already decided to revise her former decision and call Anya back into her inner circle in Polis, if the woman regained her health. Being confronted with the very real possibility of having lost her previous mentor, had been enough to prove to her that she in fact did wish for the woman to return to her side.

Anya looked genuinely surprised at the commander’s admission, but nodded mutely in acknowledgement her eyes softening for a second. She had known the younger woman for long enough to identify just how concerned her previous second really had been for her. Absentmindedly, she realized just now, that she was not in her own tent, but in fact residing in the commander’s tent.

“What happened to you?” Lexa asked in an even tone and Marie could see the woman’s demeanour changing as if she hardened herself.

Anya inhaled deeply and closed her eyes for a second and when she opened them again, Marie found that they were gleaming hard like polished stones in the candlelight in the tent. The woman seemed distant somehow, as she recalled everything and she was surprised and confused at the monotone quality of Anya’s voice.

Anya told the commander how Tristan had led them into battle at the crash site of the Skykru children. Lexa could hear the bitter tone in Anya’s voice, as she mentioned that she had lost command to the other general. The commander hoped that her former mentor would understand that it had not been a personal decision. Anya continued, how Reapers had suddenly appeared and when they had dealt with them and gotten closer to the metal contraption, the children had fallen to the ground in, they started to close the door.

“I had been closest to the door as it started to close” Anya recalled her eyes far away and voice slightly wooden “So I jumped onto it and climbed into their metal thing.”

The woman related, how she had been overpowered by the Skykru children after they had made flames erupt outside. Marie could see a shudder coursing through Anya’s body as she recalled how the warriors outside had screamed burning alive. Lexa had clenched her teeth in silent anger, knowing that there would be no retribution for the death of the 300 warriors that had burnt. Their warriors had fallen in battle, it might not have been a fair battle, but it had been a battle nonetheless.

Anya told them that the Sky children had taken her headband, coat and swords from her before leading her outside, bound by some weird straps. The woman was not sure what had happened then exactly. She knew for certain that Mountain Men had appeared, but they had thrown strange metal things at them, that had emitted red smoke and Anya knew that she had lost consciousness only moments later.

“When I woke…” Anya narrated her features becoming stone hard as well and her tone void of any emotion “…I was chained by the Mountain Men and they dragged me through the Reaper tunnels. I tried to fight against their hold, but it was in vain. I was hauled into a strange room. There were grids as a floor and I wasn’t alone there.” The shudder which ran through her frame was visible and Marie would have liked to reach out to her, but Lexa shook her head subtly, urging her to remain back for now.

The woman told the commander, that she had seen people from most of all the clans within the Mountain. Mountain Men in their strange suits had ripped the clothing from her body and literally scrubbed her clean from head to toe.

Marie glanced at the commander in silent horror, when Anya described the process of how they were cleaned by the Mountain Men and saw a blazing fury in the green eyes, while Anya’s eyes remained carefully blank. The girl herself was feeling cold all over and bile was rising in her throat at the images Anya’s words conjured in her mind. How could anyone treat another human being like that?

The procedure sounded awfully painful and extremely humiliating. It sounded as if the grounders were no better than animals for the Mountain Men. Her blood turned to ice in her veins, when Anya continued, confirming her image of the grounders being nothing more than cattle to them.

Lexa listened on in silent horror as Anya described the room, where she had been caged together with almost 300 others of their people. She could only begin to imagine how it must have felt like to be caged in such a room, waiting for certain death, utterly powerless to fight your survival.

Anya described how the Mountain Men would come into the chamber, shock one of the caged grounders with a weird stick and inject them with something which made them sleep for a few hours. The sleeping grounder would be hung upside down and their blood flowed in pipes in the wall.

“How often have they done this to you?” Lexa interjected the narration for the first time, trying to keep her internal horror from her tone. She could not stop her mind from wondering just how many of her people had been killed in such a fashion.

Anya shrugged indecisively “Three or four times, I think. It would not have been much longer before they would have discarded me” her voice did not sound particular frightened and it appeared as if she had had accepted her impending death.

Marie inhaled sharply at the woman’s words, feeling her heart squeeze painfully at the thought of losing Anya forever. If the woman realized her strong reaction, she did not show outwardly.

“The Mountain Men would take the strongest ones at first” Anya continued her eyes distant again “The room was heavy with the suffering of our people. Many were almost dying and they threw their bodies away like waste.”

Marie could see Anya’s brown eyes blaze for a second before they muted again visibly. Internally, she wondered what the Mountain Men had actually done with all the corpses. She doubted that they had burnt them, so they had not only taken the people but kept their souls trapped as well.

The woman continued her narration with how the blonde Sky girl had found her in the room an undefined time later and freed her from the cage and how they had fled together. She told them about the tracker in her arm and how she had simply bitten it out, knowing that she would fight until her last breath before she let herself be captured again by the Mountain Men, how she had fought with Clarke and how she finally had been shot, when she wanted to depart from Clarke in front of Skykru’s camp.

“I don’t know for certain how I actually got here” Anya ended with a heavy exhale, the events of the past days fully registering in her mind. During her trek to TonDC, she had doubted constantly that she would ever reach the village, pure stubbornness and determination had kept her going somehow, exceeding her physical limits.

Lexa looked down at her former mentor, trying to process everything the woman had just told them and she was truly just glad to see the woman alive. She knew that she should not care on a personal level for the general and heard Titus’ voice in her head repeating sharply how love was weakness. But in this moment. she could not be happier to see the woman conscious again and to hear her voice.

A short glance to the girl still kneeling next to Anya and the paleness and troubled expression on her features, told the commander just how deeply Anya’s tale had shaken the child. Marie looked shell-shocked and it worried her slightly that the girl had not truly reacted yet, simply staring at Anya with grey eyes wide with horror.

“Have Skykru approached you?” Anya asked the commander with guarded eyes. She was unsure of her standing with the commander right now. She had lost command over her unit before the actual attack, but she had nevertheless been with Tristan when they had led 300 warriors to their deaths. She should not have survived a lost battle in such a fashion, the fact that she had been abducted and forced into the Mountain, did not compensate her failure in her opinion.

“They have” Lexa answered simply and told the woman quickly how she had posed as a servant girl. A fleeting ghost of a smile flittered over Anya’s face at that. When she told Anya of the meeting with Clarke and how they had cured Lincoln from the Reaper drug, surprise and disbelief was evident on her face.

“So, there will be an alliance?” Anya asked with a faint flicker of hope in her brown eyes.

Lexa huffed under her breath, before she also filled the older woman in on the assassin who had been in one of the villages close by and the eighteen people that had been slaughtered at his hand.

Anya’s lips thinned “I don’t know if we can trust them. They were blindly shooting into the forest at everything that moved.” The woman thought that Clarke had obviously been lucky as Lexa had not mentioned that the blonde had also been shot. She distantly remembered the Sky girl shouting for her, while she staggered into the tree line and the girl was hauled away by Skykru. She had been lucky that their guard had not followed her into the trees, she would certainly not have been able to flee from them in her weakened state.

Lexa nodded as she had wondered the same already. Looking down at Marie, she knew that there might be some people trustworthy among Skykru, but obviously most were not to be trusted. Markus and Clarke seemed to be two members of Skykru who were genuinely interested in peace between their people as well.

“Do you think we need them to get into the Mountain?” Lexa asked after a moment of silent contemplation. Anya was the only one to ever escape the Mountain alive, so she would be best equipped to judge that. 

Anya looked honestly surprised by the question and Lexa surmised with a flash of regret, that the woman obviously thought to have lost all of the commander’s trust.

“We are no match for the tech the Mountain Men wield” Anya said slowly, as if she was unwilling to admit the fact that they might truly need the Skykru.

The commander nodded with a thoughtful expression “They will have their truce after the murderer dies.” She had already come to the conclusion that their only chance to fell the Mountain was in working together with Skykru.

Anya nodded in mute acknowledgment and Lexa recognized how tired the other woman looked, her features pale and exhausted.

“Go and get something to eat for us, Marie” Lexa softly commanded towards the child and the girl sprang into action immediately. Lexa had wanted to speak with Anya for a moment in private.

As soon as Marie had left the tent, Lexa crouched down next to Anya and when the woman tried to sit up, she put a steady hand on her shoulder to keep her down and stop her obvious struggle. She wanted to speak with her as herself and not in her function as the commander.

“I am truly glad to see you alive, Anya” Lexa said her voice soft and her green eyes expressive “When you have regained your strength, you will lead our warriors into battle against the Mountain at my side.”

That was the closest Lexa would come to actually apologizing to Anya, but the commander could see in Anya’s brown eyes that she understood all that she could and would not say out loud. Anya held up her arm and the commander gripped her forearm with her own in a warrior’s grip and they silently nodded to each other in acknowledgement.

On a certain level, Anya understood how hard it was for Lexa to let even her see more than the façade of the commander. But the woman still remembered the small and skinny runt Lexa had been when they had first met. The child had always been spirited and Anya had helped groom this woman into the commander she now was and she was deeply proud of the woman she had grown up to be.

“It would be my honour” Anya answered with a heavy voice and let go of Lexa’s arm.

“So, you have taken over the girl as your second now?” Anya asked with a slight teasing in her voice. Of course, she was aware that she had asked the commander to look after Marie in case something happened to her but, she had never expected the commander to actually take over her duty, but rather to delegate it over to someone she trusted.

Lexa nodded immediately in agreement “Of course”.

The conviction in Lexa’s voice told Anya more than any words could have, that she had never truly lost the commander’s trust, otherwise Lexa would not have been willing to take Marie as her second. Anya still remembered, how Lexa had mourned the loss of her first second and how she had been unwilling to ever take over a new one and she knew that the younger woman had not truly grown very close to the boy under her tutelage. 

The train of thought made Anya realize, that she did not possess any of her clothes she had worn to battle anymore. Tris’ braid had been in a pocket on the inside of her coat and she wondered if the Mountain Men had already burnt it. She wondered why her eyes started to burn, as she thought of the piece of braid burnt to ashes just as her second’s body already was.

“What is it?” Lexa asked worry laced into her voice at the easily displayed amount of emotion on her former mentor’s face. She had rarely seen the woman express her emotions freely.

Anya exhaled forcefully against the lump in her throat “Tris’ braid had been in my coat”

As the woman’s voice trailed off tinted strongly with regret, Lexa understood the meaning. But she remembered that Anya had mentioned that the Sky children had taken the coat from her in their metal contraption, so it was a distinct possibility that it was still there together with her sword.

“It may still be in your coat” Lexa mused and Anya seemed to remember that her coat had not been in the Mountain at all and a sliver of hope flickered in her eyes.

Before either of them could say more, Marie barged back into the tent loudly. The girl tried to balance a stack of mugs, a big jug and two plates somehow. Lexa immediately stood back up and took some of the things from the child’s hands before she could let fall all of them.

“You could have gone twice, Marie” Anya reprimanded from the bed and the girl smiled innocently as her only reaction.

Lexa just shook her head in amusement and distributed the food evenly between the three plates. She handed one to Marie and brought one over to Anya, pushing it into her hands with a forceful “Eat. You need to regain your strength quickly.”

Marie had sat down cross-legged across from the commander’s bed and after a few moments of silent eating, the girl blurted out the question that had been on her mind “Who’s second am I now?”

The commander could see a flash of regret flicker through Anya’s eyes at the realization that she probably had lost her claim over the girl, so before the older woman could answer, Lexa beat her to it in a strong tone “You will be a second to the both of us”.

Anya blinked at the commander, confusion obvious on her face. Sharing a second was unheard of so far to her knowledge.

“I have already proclaimed to take her as my second in TonDC” Lexa explained to Anya “So it will happen. But a first, whose fight was supposedly over, to return has never happened before, so you are also still her first as well” she tried to reason calmly. She had no intention to pass over the bond which had already formed between them.

Anya wanted to answer how a commander’s claim on a second would always overrule that of a general, but Lexa shook her head with a gentle smile.

“I have already made my decision Anya” Lexa reassured her and glanced at the girl who seemed happy enough at the news “We will figure out how that will work specifically at a later point”. She somehow had the feeling that Marie would continue to help them reconcile with each other.

 

Chapter 36

After the meal they shared Anya fell asleep quickly, not able any longer to fight off the fatigue in her system.

Marie looked at the woman worriedly, when she just seemed to slip off into slumber in the blink of an eye and Lexa reassured the girl in a calm tone “Her body needs rest, Marie. Sleeping is the best thing for her at the moment.”

After another short glance at Anya, Marie nodded seeing the logic in the words. She already thought that Anya looked the slightest bit less pale. She had no idea how long a recovery from such an ordeal could take, but she hoped that the woman would be back to her normal self soon.

Lexa stepped out of the tent to Gustus “Still no word from the Sky people?” she asked as a slight hint of agitation flitted into her tone.

The bulky guard shook his head in the negative “The warriors posted to wait for the murderer have not returned yet.” His expression clearly showed, how unlikely he regarded it for Skykru to give up the murderer at all.

The commander clenched her teeth angrily. The logical side of her knew that they would most definitely need Skykru’s knowledge of the Mountain Men’s technology, if they ever wanted to lay waste to the Mountain once and for all. But she was also aware that her people would not stand for an alliance if justice was not served beforehand. It would be her own blood that would be spilled if she ignored their claim for blood. Indra had already made it clear, that the woman would not stand for an alliance before they got their justice. Lexa knew that Indra would not stand alone to doubt her, if she sided with Skykru now and she could not afford that.

“Has Marcus Kane already been released to return to his people?” the commander asked Gustus after a beat of silence. She had not been specific in the instructions on when to release the man.

“No, Heda. A guard holds him in a tent waiting for further command” Gustus answered immediately with a slight frown.

Lexa nodded mutely thinking for a moment, but disregarding her idea for now, instead she said “Have Sierra sent to me”. Gustus nodded in mute acceptance and left to fetch his daughter.

Marie had looked expectantly at Lexa, when the commander returned into the tent, she had been able to hear the short conversation between her and Gustus and she never had heard the name so far. When Lexa saw her charge’s gaze locked onto her, she simply explained “I told you already that you would need to learn the communication systems our scouts are using. Sierra is best suited to teach you.”

Marie’s grey eyes lighted up minutely at the prospect of learning this particular skill. She had been fascinated with the way the warriors used to intimate bird calls and other sounds of nature for communication purposes. Her slight smile fell immediately, when Sierra entered and she recognized the scout that had reacted so distrustfully to her before. The woman completely ignored Marie’s presence and waited for the commander to tell her what she wanted in stony silence.

Lexa ignored Marie’s reaction to Sierra, as she hoped that her old friend would get to know her charge better and come to like her with time and said to Sierra “I asked you here to teach Marie your scouts’ language skills. I know you are the best in them.” The compliment was aimed to sooth the obviously discontent scout and Lexa saw the other woman sigh.

Sierra’s dark eyes flitted over to Marie minutely, expression scornful “Is teaching one of them our ways really wise, Lexa?” she asked and her lips pressed into a thin line.

The commander glared down at her old friend “I have clearly given you an order, scout” her voice steeled and her green eyes clearly showed the other woman that she did not care for her opinion in this matter and would not hear anything else in this regard.

Sierra’s lips thinned further in clear irritation, but she nodded mutely, aware that she had overstepped her position and turned to the young girl. “Then let us begin” she said with a slight grimace on her face and clear reluctance in her tone.

Lexa just shook her head in annoyance and stormed out of the tent, leaving Marie alone with Sierra. She knew that her old friend would not physically harm her charge, but the dark-haired woman sometimes was too impetuous for her own good.

Fortunately for Marie, the scout knew better than to disregard a direct order and did teach her the beginning of this communication form.

It quickly proved much more difficult for Marie to learn than she had anticipated, as she was completely unfamiliar with the different birds and their distinct calls. Sierra did not seem to possess much patience with her lack of knowledge and sneered at her the whole time.

Marie had no idea how long they had already practiced, when Sierra suddenly stood up and glared down at her “That was enough for now. Hopefully you will memorize at least a bit” her tone and expression clearly showed how incapable she thought the child to be and with that the warrior stormed out of the tent, while Marie just looked after her retreating back in silence. She had had to bite at her lips a few times during the lesson, to stop an angry retort from tumbling from her mouth, at the unfairness of the woman’s reaction to her. She had not done anything to the scout and by thus Marie did not understand her obvious disapproval.

A few minutes passed before Marie could hear Lexa conversing with Gustus just at the entrance of the tent.

Lexa nodded to Gustus after she had walked through the camp to assess their numbers and the mood in the camp and proclaimed firmly “Have Markus Kane escorted to me now”.

Gustus nodded in silent acknowledgement and strode from the entrance of the tent, while Lexa turned around and re-entered the tent.

Marie smiled fleetingly at the commander, when she entered. She noted with a slight flash of worry how drawn the woman appeared to be. She immediately went closer to her, when Lexa motioned her over.

“You shall continue to practise” Lexa ordered the girl, bending over the table and searching for some empty parchment, handing it over to the child together with a feather and ink.

Marie looked at the items with a slight frown. The commander had already shown her how to write with a feather, but it still felt weird in her fingers and she had hoped to get a regular pen instead.

Lexa rolled her eyes at the girl’s obvious dislike for the writing utensils “You will not get used to them without further practice” she chided the girl, voice hinted with impatience.

Marie sighed under her breath, but nodded in agreement and a few moments later, she sat on the floor next to Lexa’s bed and had some of the parchment placed on her legs. Lexa had given her the instruction to practice her writing in Trigedasleng and she was focused completely on it now.

Lexa had watched the girl in silence from her throne and nodded with internal satisfaction, it seemed that the girl was finally able to gather her focus again. They would both need to work with Marie very urgently on her ability to focus, no matter the circumstances. A battle was always chaotic and the girl needed to learn to keep her focus even through utter chaos and fear. She also needed to direly learn to push her personal feelings away or at least to keep them from her expression as the child was too easy to read at the moment, but Lexa was positive she would learn quickly enough.

Quietly the commander strode over towards the girl and peered down on what she had written so far. Lexa quickly recognized that the girl had made a chart with words and phrases in Trigedasleng and their translation into English. She had not given specific instructions to Marie on what exactly to do, but she internally acknowledged that this system would surely help the girl in memorizing the new words quicker. She bent down over the girl and said “Your spelling is incorrect” pointing down at the phrase.

Marie jumped in her place, totally startled not having noticed the commander approaching at all and she looked up at the woman with slightly widened grey eyes.

“Always be aware of your surroundings, Marie” Lexa lectured in a mild tone “If my intention had been to kill you, you would not have seen the attack coming” she explained why being alert to your surroundings was of such importance.

The girl nodded again, eyes still slightly widened. “How can you move this silently anyway?” she wondered with a mixture of awe and a frown.

Lexa chuckled slightly at the child’s almost comical expression “You will learn soon enough” she appeased the child.

Marie opened her mouth to retort something, but Gustus interrupted them, proclaiming Marcus Kane’s arrival as Lexa had requested.

The commander straightened up and told to Marie “Continue your practise” in a strict tone and looked towards the entrance of the tent.

Lexa hoped to actually show the man a different side of them right now, with the girl relaxed sitting on the floor and just practising her writing skills. “Lead him in” the commander called out loudly, but stayed standing beside Marie.

Markus was led into the tent by a guard holding him in a vice like grip and his eyes wandered through the tent quickly. The commander inclined her head at the guard, dismissing him mutely and he let go of Marcus and stepped out of the tent to wait until he was supposed to escort the man back.

Marie had just shortly glanced up at the man, but now had her attention focused back on her parchment again. She knew that she would most likely not be expected to contribute anything to the impending discussion anyway and she still had many phrases floating through her head, she needed to note down before they would slip away again.

Lexa could see the man taking in the slightly domestic scene with barely hidden surprise in his eyes.

The man straightened up quickly, when he noticed that the commander had watched him in his starring. “You wished to speak to me, commander” the man offered in a gentle tone, seemingly not resentful for the rather harsh way he had been treated with so far.

Lexa inclined her head “I did. Your chancellor seems unwilling to give over the murderer for justice” she proclaimed, her jaw tightened in mute annoyance.

Markus looked away from her for a second, clenching his teeth silently. The man either did not agree with their claim for justice or with the way his people were ignoring their claim.

“Tell me, Marcus of the Sky people” Lexa said her eyes hardening “how would your people have punished a murderer?”

Marcus exhaled rather forcefully and he seemed to deflate, before he answered his voice sounding hollow “The boy would have been floated. So, executed…” he trailed off with a deep sigh.

As the man’s voice trailed off, Lexa wondered why the Sky people resisted handing the boy over for his justly punishment, if they had proceeded similar with criminals before.

“Commander” Marcus started, looking back at her with an almost pleading expression “I know that your people deserve justice. But I fear that the chancellor will not hand him over to your justice. I am sure I can convince them to construct a trial of our own for Finn.”

Lexa furrowed her brow for a moment, mulling the offer over in her head. She doubted that a Skykru trial would appease Indra and those who shared her opinion, but if she as commander proclaimed it to be sufficient, she was fairly certain her people would accept that. At least for now that the Mountain would deflect their anger from Skykru, Lexa would surely personally have to suffer from the repercussion later. “And your trial would result in the murderer’s death?” she asked returning her gaze to Marcus and intently watched his face.

The man nodded in agreement “Lesser crimes have been punished with death by us so far. And if that is the only way for peace between our people.”

Lexa breathed out deeply, steeling herself before she proclaimed “Your people have until first light to decide to give the boy up. You will be returned to your people then to offer them a trial on their own.”

The solution was not ideal on many levels, but without the boy’s death there was absolutely no chance for an alliance. Many would not like it, but Lexa was positive she would be able to handle critics from her own people for now.

“Thank you” Marcus said with an open and honest expression on his face, his eyes flashing with relief.

The commander nodded once and called out to the guard still waiting outside “Escort Marcus of the Sky people back to his tent and stand guard.”

The guard who had brought Marcus Kane into her tent re-entered a moment later and led the man out without another word.

Lexa let the tension drain from body, feeling slightly exhausted all at once, already knowing that she could be painfully regretting her decision in the future.

Anya’s voice which suddenly resonated through the tent lowly, made her startle “Was that really wise?”

Lexa turned back to her bed and saw the woman trying to get up into a sitting position and Marie still sitting on the floor beneath the bed, looking up at her with worried eyes and obviously internally debating on whether to offer help or not.

“Speak your mind” Lexa prompted her general. She had always listened to her former mentor’s advice. She had not always heeded it, but she still treasured a second opinion.

“Indra and others won’t stand for a simple quick execution” Anya said contemplatively, voice reflecting her worry.

“They will, when I order it” Lexa bit back through clenched teeth. But Anya had spoken out what she feared might happen. She had the unwavering support of Trikru at the moment, but that might change anytime.

Anya regarded her former second with caring eyes “This decision might cost you your life, Lexa” she cautioned gravely.

The use of her name without any title let Lexa turn back to the woman and she nodded with heavy eyes, she had already come to that conclusion on her own after all.

Marie had listened to them mutely and had her head was slightly cocked to the side “Why would it cost your life?” she inquired, voice tinted with honest confusion.

Lexa sat down on the unoccupied edge of her bed and explained “As the commander, I cannot show weakness. Indra and her village demand and deserve justice for their dead. If I decide to finalize an alliance with Skykru without that justice being served to their satisfaction, they might proclaim me to be too weak to stand up against Skykru and too weak to demand their rights, too weak to lead our people.”

Marie mulled the words over in her mind for a moment, before she furrowed her brow with a frown “But that is dump. You would just want an alliance to fight the Mountain which would be easier together with Skykru.”

The commander smiled down slightly at the girl “You are correct, which would be why I would make an alliance with Skykru after the murderer gets a Skykru trial, but Indra and many others might still not be satisfied with that. They may not speak up about it until after the war against the Mountain though” she added with a sigh, expression serene again.

“So, they would question your decision later on?” Marie wondered loudly, brows creased.

It was Anya who nodded in agreement after a glance to Lexa, seeing the woman taking in that this choice could truly cost her life. Anya knew that Lexa would gladly take this risk, if it meant freeing them of the threat of the Mountain forever. That was why Lexa was such a great commander, she understood the need for sacrifices, even sacrifices she herself might need to make.

“Are politics always like this?” the girl asked with distaste clear in her voice.

Both Lexa and Anya chuckled slightly before Lexa answered with an almost weary voice “I fear so. You always balance on a swords edge. One wrong move and the sword will be used to cut you down.”

“I hope they will give Finn up” Marie proclaimed with conviction blazing in her eyes.

Lexa regarded the girl with a slight smile warmed by the care the girl obviously now held towards her wellbeing. “We shall see in the morning” she proclaimed after a beat of silence.

Darkness had fallen outside of the tent and Anya offered to return to another tent to make Lexa’s bed available again, but Lexa refused vehemently, telling her that her tent still had to be erected and she would just sleep on the floor with Marie again.

Anya looked on dumbfounded as both Marie and Lexa got ready to sleep and Lexa let the girl cuddle up to her with a content expression on her face.

Lexa only glared at Anya from the floor with an expression that promised murder, if she so much as breathed a word of this to anyone when she caught the woman still staring at them.

It did not take any of them long to fall asleep. But Anya waited until both of them had fallen asleep to glance down at her former second and her current second with a gentle expression.

The night passed without any disturbance, which also meant that the Sky people still had not given over the boy.

Anya painstakingly got up from the bed on the next morning and made some weak steps through the tent under both Lexa’s and Marie’s watchful eyes. It was clear that Anya was still not well, but that she was awake again and able to walk at all was more than Lexa and Marie had hoped for days ago.

Anya seemed more annoyed than anything else at the weakened state of her body and let herself sink down on one of the stools with a groan.

“Patience” Lexa admonished from her throne “You are breathing and alive. Healing will take as long as it takes.”

Anya obviously had to bite back a sharp retort at the words. She had been the one to utter those words to Lexa many years ago and now knew how unhelpful they actually were. If anything, they incensed her impatience with herself even more.

Chanting had broken out in the camp, when Marie had been sent to collect breakfast for them.

“Blood must have blood” was repeated from all warriors and created a daunting atmosphere in the camp.

Marie shivered slightly and hurried back to the commander’s tent, after she had received some food.

Lexa and Anya stood at the entrance of the tent and both were looking out onto the camp as two riders approached the commander.

“We have a message from the Skykru chancellor” one said through his mask “They are unwilling to give up the boy and are ready to fight, if it comes to that”

Lexa clenched her teeth angrily and nodded to them to dismiss them. Anya and the commander shared a silent worried glance and she issued the command to silence the chanting. She would grant Marcus Kane his chance to convince the chancellor now.

 

Chapter 37

Lexa and Anya both were tense throughout the meal they shared in the commander’s tent. Marie had picked up on both of their moods and purposefully had her eyes fixed on her plate. She may not understand much about warfare, but she did understand now that Skykru’s denial to hand over Finn, was bad for Lexa personally and still, the commander seemed to frantically search for a way for still bring peace between Skykru and the grounders.

The commander itched to simply march into Skykru’s camp and to haul out the boy by herself. She highly doubted that the Skykru guard would truly be able to offer much resistance to her warriors. She had hoped these people would have a higher sense of honour. If Skykru chose to have the boy put to a trial themselves, it was Lexa who would suffer the repercussion later on. The uncertainty of being forced to sit idle and wait to see if Marcus would be able to convince their chancellor to see reason, was only increasing her internal agitation with every passing moment.

Anya watched on as Lexa ground her teeth nonstop and knew that she would not be able right now to offer her former second any help in fighting off Lexa’s tension. In times of a forced wait between battles, Anya had always liked to vent of her tension on the training pits and she was aware that Lexa had taken a similar approach.

Shortly after they had finished eating, Alira came into the tent to check on Anya’s wounds and exchange the bandages again. The woman seemed to be satisfied with the healing process so far, but told Anya firmly to take it easy the next days or the gunshot wound could reopen internally.

Marie had watched the whole proceedings with worried grey eyes, she thought that the huge patch of burned skin on the general’s front and back looked horrible and she was convinced that it must be hurting her immensely.

“We will continue your training now” Lexa declared immediately in a clipped tone after Alira had stepped out of the tent, rising from her chair quickly and glancing at the girl in impatience.

Anya almost winced out loud in sympathy for Marie and wondered for a second, if she should call off the training for the girl’s sake. She decided against it when she noticed the commander’s darkened mood and struggled to get up and follow them instead. If she could not convince Lexa to forgo training with Marie, she would at least watch and make sure to call the commander out on when to finally stop. The child was not the cause for the other woman’s bleak mood and Lexa could accidentally injure their second severely if she lost control over her strikes for a moment. 

“You should rest, Anya” Lexa barked out in a firm tone, while strapping on her swords to her back.

“And you should not train her in this mood” Anya muttered under her breath, while Marie tried to be as invisible as possible. The general knew that there was no real talking sense into the brunette woman like that.

Marie’s grey eyes flitted between both women in rising worry. It was easy to identify how tense the commander appeared to be and that Anya obviously did not want them to train with each other at the current moment.

Although Anya’s words had been spoken very quietly, Lexa had picked them up just fine. The woman huffed in annoyance with herself. She knew that her former mentor was right and it would not be fair to use the girl as an outlet for her frustration with Skykru. Lexa was aware that Marie still stood absolutely no chance in combat training against her, so as to not harm her by accident in her current mood, Lexa sent a guard to retrieve a bow and a quiver.

Anya had internally feared to be met with open hospitality from the other warriors, after she was the only one to return from the lost battle with the Sky children. She visibly hesitated in front of the tent flap, breathing in deeply and ignoring the current of pain shooting through her body.

Marie frowned over her shoulder at the woman, afraid that Anya might need to stay behind still and she waited until the general visibly straightened herself and motioned her to go ahead.

Anya held her breath in anticipation as the first warriors spotted her. Instead of the hospitality she had anticipated, the warriors were visibly awed to see her. She watched on in silent amazement, as many warriors even went so far as to bow to her in acknowledgment and silent honour.

“You are the first to escape the Mountain, Anya” Lexa said to the woman lowly, having picked up to her general’s train of thought “That far outweighs the shame of losing a battle”.

Anya just nodded silently, but felt deeply touched nonetheless and she noticed the girl smiling up at her fleetingly.

Indra approached them in fast strides, anger radiating from her features on their slow way towards the free place, where Marie could practise with the bow. “So, Skykru have not handed over the boy” the dark-skinned warrior seethed through teeth clenched in anger.

The commander merely inclined her head in acknowledgement and her eyes flashed slightly.

“When will we march on them, commander?” Indra asked with hard eyes, her fingers already gripping around her sword.

“Not now, Indra” Lexa told her in a calm voice “Marcus from the Sky people is speaking with their chancellor” she declared firmly, staring at the general for a moment.

Indra’s lips thinned and her eyes glinted dangerously, but she kept silent knowing better than to question the commander even more in public.

“Keep your eyes on the woods” Lexa relented “If the boy leaves the safety of their camp, capture him” she ordered.

The woman nodded immediately, obviously appeased for the moment.

“Let’s hope they are dumb enough to let the boy flee” Anya said contemplatively, watching behind Indra striding away.

That was actually what Lexa was hoping for at the moment as well. She knew she would not like the outcome for herself, if the boy was executed by Skykru.

The guard she had sent to collect a bow met up with them on an unoccupied patch of free space with trees as a border. The trees could be used as a target now.

Lexa nodded at the guard in silent dismissal after she took the bow from him and the man hurried away again. She tested the bow out for herself for a few moments and shot a single arrow at the nearest tree hitting the trunk perfectly.

Marie watched the commander handle the bow with awe-filled eyes.

Anya slowly sat down on the grass next to Lexa, so that she could watch the training and did not have to put even more strain on her injury by standing.

The commander handed the bow over to Marie and pointed to the nearest tree.

The girl had once before tried to shoot with a bow, but had only had average success. Anya was eager to see if her charge would fare better now, that she should be able to concentrate again. She had not had the opportunity yet to ask Lexa on the progress of Marie’s training. She watched on with a slight frown, how the first few shots of the girl did not hit the tree trunk at all. They were close, but they all missed.

Lexa had remained directly beside Marie, watching her technique critically and she made some corrections on the stance the girl had and made her hold the bow much longer, so that she could aim far better on the target, before she motioned her to continue.

The corrections helped immensely and only a few shots later Marie fired a series of five arrows which hit the tree trunk nearly on the spot Lexa had aimed for before. Marie smiled brightly at her success, looking between the two of them with shining grey eyes.

Both Anya and Lexa nodded at the girl in acknowledgement, satisfied with her skill. It was obvious the girl had to have some natural talent with both, the throwing knives and the bow to be this good after only a short training period.

“Marie seems to have some natural talent there as well” Lexa commented to Anya, while Marie went to collect her arrows from the tree trunk.

Anya nodded mutely, she could not counter the commander’s assessment. 

“She might make a good hunter or even a scout” Lexa mussed on thoughtfully. The girl did not automatically have to wish to lead a unit later on and her talents could come in handy in the future. 

“Yeah” Anya agreed instantly “But she will need to train for sword fighting as well”. She had not seen any cuts on the girl’s fingers yet and she was certain that the child would injure herself a few times before she got the hang of handling a sword.

Lexa nodded “True, but it is good if she has some skills already and does not have to learn all weapons from the scratch.” The girl had enough to learn and they would need to focus on which aspects she showed some inherit talents already.

“Will she march with us against the Mountain?” Anya asked after a moment of silence. She knew that it was not certain yet, if they would march against the Mountain at all or not, but she was convinced that Lexa would manage to forge peace between their people and Skykru, she had succeeded in bringing the clans together as well.

Lexa opened her mouth and closed it again without uttering a word and spoke only after another moment of thought “We shall see when the battle will take place. As my second or our second she should be at our sides, but I will decide if she is ready when the time comes.”

Anya nodded satisfied with the answer. The woman knew that she should not doubt taking the child with them to battle, as it had always been their way to take seconds to battles as early as possible. But seconds were normally much younger when they started their training and so the seconds who were as old as Marie as, already were experienced enough to go into battle and to prove their skills.

Even though Lexa was feeling a sense of satisfaction while she watched the girl train her skills with the bow, it did not help her one bit to dissolve the tension she was feeling. The commander had started to tap the hilt of her sword with her finger tips in a nervous gesture.

Anya was watching the younger woman from the corner of her eyes from her position on the ground, while Marie clearly had great difficulties to get the arrows out of the tree trunk again.

Anya smirked as the girl failed to extract the arrow Lexa had shot at the beginning. The child had put that much strength into the pull of the shaft, that she nearly fell over when the arrow did not budge and her hands lost her grip on the smooth wood and she stumbled backwards.

As Anya found the sight of the girl amusing, Lexa rolled her eyes in slight annoyance. In a few quick strides the commander had went over to the tree bunk and pulled out her dagger.

“Watch” Lexa barked at Marie, finally losing her patience with the girl who looked at her with a sheepish expression.  The woman cleared away some of the wood from the tree around the arrow, so that it was far easier to pull out afterwards.

She handed the arrow over to the girl with slightly more force than necessary and Lexa saw alarm flash through the grey eyes of the girl. Taking some deep breaths, the commander tried to push away the annoyance that was thrumming through her veins. She knew that she was not annoyed with the girl herself, but rather with the whole situation and Skykru. Anya was right after all, training the girl now had not been a good idea.

Lexa let her eyes gentle slightly “That is enough for now. You can watch me spar now.”

Marie blinked at the young woman in astonishment. Tris had said that the commander rarely participated in the training after she had been called to lead and she was about to be able to watch her again.

Anya had picked up on Lexa’s words as they moved in her direction and slowly got up from the ground again, feeling a throbbing pain in her abdomen at the movement. The woman gritted her teeth. She hated injuries with a passion and she normally would ignore them, but this injury was more severe and even she had to admit that she needed time to heal before she would be able to fight again. Even getting to her feet proved more strenuous than Anya had thought possible.

Lexa waited until Anya had gotten to her feed again, knowing that the woman would not appreciate it if she offered her assistance. Marie waited beside them, her features watching the general with rising worry at her obvious struggle.

Together they went back to the training pits where some warriors were sparring just to get rid of some tension, while others were also training their seconds giving last advice on the battle to come.

The warriors instantly saw the commander approaching the training pit and respectfully halted their training to make room for their leader. The older warriors all deeply respected Lexa as their commander as most of them had seen the young woman fight in one battle or another. The younger ones of course showed her respect as well as was due to her leader position, but they had not seen the woman’s combat skills for themselves. So, all seconds were visibly eager to be able to watch the commander fight as well, her skill legendary among them.

“Come” Anya said to Marie and guided the girl to the side, so that they would not stand in the way of the sparring warriors with a hand on the small of her back. She took the bow and the quiver with the arrows from the girl and handed them to one of the guards to take them back where they had come from.

A second later Gustus stepped up next to Anya, watching the proceedings with a slight frown.

Lexa had stepped into the centre of the training pits and looked around the warriors that had started to gather around her.

“Whoever wants to try their luck” Lexa addressed all of them with a quick glance and twirled the sword in her hand skilfully, waiting whoever would dare to make the first attack against her.

The seconds around the pit were all buzzing with excitement now, eager to try to beat the legendary commander. The older warriors just rolled their eyes at their excitement, some of them had already had the honour to fight against the commander and still knew that they had not had a chance against her.

 Anya could see Gustus’ frown only deepening at Lexa’s words and she spoke under her breath to the man “Ease up, Gustus. Let her vent of her frustration.” She always regarded it safer to vent off frustration on the training pits, than in an actual battle and Lexa certainly would need a clear head when Skykru finally made their move.

Gustus did not show any sign that he had even heard the other woman’s words and just watched on as the first second charged at the commander with his swords raised.

Marie also watched the impending fight and how the commander just waited for the second, a young second Marie guessed to be around fourteen, to make his first strike.

The commander seemed to dance away from the blade aimed at her head and when the young warrior charged again, the commander dived under the other’s defence and hit his hand with the blunt end of her sword.

The second let his sword drop at the painful sting the hit emitted on his hand and if the commander had not stopped her next strike in the last second, she would have beheaded the teenager without much effort.

The defeated second picked up his sword again with his shoulders dropped slightly and the grin he had had on his face as he charged at the commander, was now completely gone. But Lexa did not show the second any more attention and already had taken up a defensive stance again and waited for the next second to charge at her.

It did not take the commander long at all to disarm all of the seconds who had wanted to take their chance with her. Marie had watched all of them with wide eyes, deeply awed at the commander’s effortless victory and she noted that the woman did not even seem to be out of breath.

Lexa huffed, still feeling the nervous energy buzzing in her veins and twirled her swords again. The commander was rolling her shoulders when Indra took out her sword and faced the commander.

Marie looked at Anya for a second and whispered “Do generals normally spar?” The fight between Anya and the commander had seemed much more balanced and she was almost eager to see the dark-skinned woman fight.

Anya also had her eyes slightly narrowed and shook her head “Indra is just not satisfied with the commander right now.”

Indra’s fighting skills were definitely a better match to the commander’s skill and the woman’s posture changed from looking almost playful as if they really fought just for the fun of it, to circling the other woman with steely eyes.

After a few moments the loud clang of swords clashing against each other resonated through the camp. Marie could see that Lexa really had to concentrate now and the blows she dealt out had much more force to them than they had in the previous fights.

Marie loudly observed to Anya how she was able to detect differences in the fighting style between Indra and Lexa and the woman nodded satisfied that her second was paying attention.

The fight between the two women seemed to continue forever and Marie wondered just how long they could circle around each other, testing the other’s defence without inflicting any real damage. In the end no one actually won the fight as a scout hastily came running to the training pits shouting loudly “Commander, Skykru have moved the boy out of their camp!”

Both Lexa and Indra stopped in their tracks turning to face the scout.

The dark-skinned woman growled slightly and she shortly looked to Lexa expectedly.

The commander sheathed her sword and hissed at Indra “Gather your warriors and bring the murderer here, Indra” she repeated her previous order with dangerously gleaming eyes.

The other woman nodded and a wolfish grin formed on her face that made Marie’s skin crawl. It did not take long for the general to gather her warriors and lead them towards the tree line.

Lexa watched the small group leave and almost desperately hoped that this way they would still get their rightful justice.

 

Chapter 38

Marie watched Indra and a few other warriors leave the training pits in a flurry of movements after Lexa gave her command and among them, she recognized Sierra. She wondered why she had not seen the scout in TonDC before, where she now seemed to be around all the time and internally, she hoped, that the woman would vanish to wherever she had come from again. She was a little bit worried to note on the positive excitement in Indra’s expression, as if they would take personal enjoyment from capturing Finn. She could fathom their thirst of revenge though, she had heard Nyko reporting on how Finn had barged into their village, gun raised and asking after Clarke and his friends in an almost blind rage, only to start shooting at everyone who moved, when he had obviously lost his nerves and snapped.

From what Marie had heard from Anya about the previous commanders so far, it could even be considered lenient of Lexa to only demand Finn and not eighteen people from Skykru as 18 villagers had been massacred by Finn. Marie still had difficulties to picture what Anya described as “more bloodthirsty and ruthless”. She had wondered what would have happened to her and the other delinquents if they had been sent to the ground during the reign of another commander. To her internal horror, both Anya and Lexa had answered with unwavering conviction that no commander before Lexa would have even contemplated to investigate where they had come from or why they were on earth at all. She shuddered to imagine how they would have been killed off one by one without any kind of prewarning, not even given the slightest chance of survival. As she looked behind Indra and Sierra, already vanishing in the tree line, she darkly thought that some people would have readily agreed with this approach.

“Who is Sierra?” Marie asked lowly to Anya who had still been standing next to her. She had thought it weird, how the scout had readily addressed Lexa by her name and not by her proper title and she had only observed very few people doing so as well.

Gustus had stood near enough to them to be able to catch the girl’s soft question and answered it in Anya’s stead “She is my oldest daughter.” He looked down at the girl carefully, he had already listened to his daughter’s, probably highly exaggerated, report about the lesson she had been tasked to hold with the girl. Marie had not managed to leave a positive impression on his daughter so far.

Marie’s eyes widened momentarily in obvious surprise and she stared up at Gustus’ face a little more closely, trying to spot similarities between their features. Now that she knew of them being related, she remembered that the woman had the same form of her eyes and their noses looked almost the same and the way they carried themselves was immensely similar as well. She did not know exactly why she was so surprised to hear that the burly guard had a family at all, it had probably been incredibly foolish of her to assume that none of the warriors had children of their own. She wondered how Lexa and Sierra might be connected through their past, she judged both women to be of similar age.

Anya regarded the girl next to her with a smirk, it was obvious the girl was bursting with questions, she clearly wanted to ask, but Gustus’ involvement had made her hesitant to speak up as it seemed. “Sierra and Lexa have trained with each other for years” Anya offered in explanation, taking pity in the girl’s burning curiosity “She is the commander’s most trusted scout and they have been friends for years, before she was called to lead our people.”

Marie nodded with a thoughtful expression, clearly silently processing the new information and she only spoke up again a few minutes later and so low that both Anya and Gustus had to strain their hearing to catch her words “She does not seem to like me … like at all” her brows creased, still not understanding what she had done to earn the woman's hostility.

“As a scout Sierra has to be more distrustful of strangers than a normal warrior” Gustus said and reassured the girl “It is not personal.” It had taken him the course of several days to realize that the girl did have some positive characteristics and now that the child would function as the commander’s second, Marie’s protection would be one of his extended obligations as well.

Marie looked at the man with a frown on her face obviously not believing his words, but she kept silent.

The commander had obviously vented off enough frustration for now and sheathed her swords back on her back.

Anya had a slight grimace on her face and had put a hand over her clothed abdomen right where Marie knew the bandage rested over the gunshot wound. The woman’s breathing was also exhilarated even though she had not moved in some time. Her face looked even paler and she seemed to sweat.

But Marie had no idea how to tell the woman that she obviously needed more rest without insulting her somehow and she knew enough of their hierarchy by now to know for sure that it was not her place to give Anya any medical advice. Grounders seemed to be all about strength, so with so many of them in earshot she would only affront Anya, if she spoke up, no matter how worried she internally might be about how quickly Anya’s condition had obviously worsened again.

Luckily for Marie, Lexa had also picked up on Anya’s condition after she had put away her weapons and returned to them at the edge of the fighting pit and she quickly guided them back through the camp towards her tent. The commander knew that Anya could sometimes be as stubborn as a mule, so she would need to order her to rest or she never would on her own. She knew the woman would keep pushing through the pain until her body gave out on her. She might have accepted a few days ago that her former mentor had been lost as well, without any hint that the woman might be alive still, but she would not stand back and watch her general kill herself through sheer stubbornness.

On the way through the camp, Marie saw the place where the execution would take place, later when Indra and her warriors would have returned with Finn. A thick pole had been erected on a platform and Marie guessed that Finn would be tied to the pole, but she had no real idea how the grounders executed criminals. Her stomach clenched in slight anxiety at the knowledge that she would have to find out in the next few hours. She was certain that an execution would be an event where she was supposed to stand beside the commander as her second.

Lexa purposefully walked much slower than she normally would to give Anya more time and the fact that the woman had not complained about the slower speed, although she would have certainly picked up on it, spoke volumes about the level of her pain and  physical constitution.

“Go to the handmaiden’s tent and fetch Alira to change Anya’s bandage, Marie” Lexa lowly said to the girl walking between Anya and her. She internally wondered if she should have been more insistent and simply ordered Anya to remain behind in their tent. It was worrying to see the woman's strength leave her body after such a short time and minimal physical exertion. As a child, Lexa had always regarded as the epitome of strengths and she had rarely witnessed Anya being wounded with something more serious than a graze or some bruises.

Marie nodded wordlessly and skipped away from them after a short final glance at Anya.

The woman only looked back at the girl with strained features, clearly trying to hide her discomfort.

The handmaiden’s tent was only a slight distance away from the commander’s tent, so it did not take Marie long to reach her destination. In front of the tent, Marie saw a young girl and she judged that the girl was probably even younger than herself. She was definitely smaller at least.  “Is Alira here?” Marie asked the girl in a kind voice.

The girl had just looked up and opened her mouth to answer, when the woman she was searching for walked out of the tent.

“The commander wants you to change Anya’s bandage” Marie said to her quickly with a fleeting smile. The handmaid had been kind to her so far and she was grateful for the way, the woman now cared for Anya as well.

Alira nodded in acknowledgment and quickly stepped back into the tent to gather a bag with her meagre medical equipment.

The girl in front of the tent continued to stare up at Marie with wide eyes, but she did not say a word and remained mute.

“Come, child” Alira said a short moment later, after observing both girls only inspecting the other in absolute silence.  On the way to the commander’s tent Alira commented “Betha is intrigued to see you in person. She had only heard talk at the bonfire about the girl who fell from the sky.”

Marie looked over at the woman with a furrowed brow, wondering internally what the people were saying about her. With a heavy heart she gathered that it probably could not be too much complimenting her at all.

“You have made a lasting impression on the warriors, when you threw the commander’s dagger at the pines successfully” Alira said chuckling slightly. She had not witnessed the incident herself, but had heard about it often enough to know of it's truth. She had also recognized the commander's dagger strapped to the girl's thigh.

They reached the commander’s tent only a moment later, so Marie did not have the opportunity to ask what else the people were saying about her.

Anya was standing in the middle of the tent with her arms crossed over her chest looking like a defiant child and glaring at Lexa who had obviously just said something to Anya seconds ago. After a few moments of silent staring at each other, Anya huffed obviously annoyed and lowered her arms again turning around to Alira.

Marie watched the general's behaviour with a confused frown, wondering what had happened before their entrance.

The handmaid completely ignored whatever had transpired before they entered the tent and professionally tended to Anya.

The bandage she removed from her abdomen was soaked with blood and Marie could see a worried frown on the woman’s face at the sight of the wound.

Gently the woman applied a reddish paste onto the wound and tightly wrapped a new bandage around Anya’s torso.

“You need to rest” Alira said with emphasis and as if she knew that the general would not heed her advice, she turned to Lexa and addressed the commander instead “The wound has reopened partly. Without strict bedrest, I fear it will reopen completely.”

The commander nodded with a glint in her eyes, that clearly promised she would make Anya rest if the woman wanted to or not and dismissed the handmaid again with a simple wave of her hand.

“You heard her, Anya” Lexa said with an unyielding voice and looked pointedly at her bed of furs.

Anya gnashed her teeth with an annoyed expression, huffed and pulled her hands up in surrender “But I can rest in my on tent” she grumbled under her breath.

Lexa slightly shook her head and answered in a softer voice and her green eyes portrayed even more emotions than her words expressed “My mind would rest easier if I knew you rested nearby.”

Anya only huffed once and moved over to the furs and lowered herself onto them with an obviously pained grunt.

Marie had watched everything with worried eyes and hoped that Anya would heal faster by some kind of miracle. She was slightly confused by the dynamic between Anya and the commander, but it was obvious that they somehow cared for each other on a personal level.

Lexa motioned Marie over to a table and made her sit down on a small stool. She handed the girl some parchment and started to ask her for translations of certain phrases. Whenever Marie did not know a word or a phrase, she would write them down on the parchment to be able to review them on her own whenever she had the time.

After some time Lexa told Marie to continue on her own and checked on Anya’s sleeping form. The woman was sleeping peacefully although Lexa could see a slight sheen of sweat on her pale skin and worried that the wound might fester an infection.

“What exactly does an execution look like here, Lexa?” Marie asked in a hesitant small tone, looking up from the parchment she was supposed to work on her writing skills on.

“It depends on the crimes committed by the accused” Lexa said and glanced over the girl’s head at the parchment, quickly judging how much her charge had already practised. The commander could see the curiosity burning in the girl’s eyes and knew she would need an answer before she would be able to concentrate back on her task at hand, so Lexa sat down next to Marie and met her inquiring gaze with a serious expression on her face. “I am sure you actually want to know how Finn is going to die, correct?”

At that Marie nodded in mute agreement and bit at her lips as if afraid of what the answer would be.

“Finn killed innocent villagers who were not even warriors. He killed elders and children without defence” Lexa said gravely “That is one of the worst crimes for us. As he killed innocents his punishment will start with fire.”

“Fire” Marie echoed with a slightly trembling voice. Pictures were already running through her mind of Finn being tied to the poles and burned with torches.

Lexa only nodded and continued “After the fire his hands, tongue and eyes will be removed. If he survives all villagers get their turn with a knife. As the commander I would end the execution with my sword through his heart.”

Marie looked slightly green and had to swallow against the lump that had formed in her throat.

“Most do not last until the sword” Lexa finally said “He killed eighteen innocents, so he will suffer the pain of eighteen deaths. If death has no cost, life has no worth.”

Marie mulled over the words in her head for a few moments processing the new information.

“How were your criminals executed?” Lexa asked in a calm tone to divert the girl’s thoughts from the specifics of their executions. Only the worst crimes were punished in the way she had just described.

Marie’s eyes seemed distant for a moment before she blinked once as if to clear her head and answered “We called it “floating”” Marie said “But it was …”

Marie thought for a moment before she continued “…less bloody I guess. Most criminals were floated on the Ark due to the restricted resources. I have seen my father being floated.”

Lexa could see the girl’s body shivering slightly as she thought back on her father’s execution. The commander waited for her charge to continue in her own time.

“A criminal would stand in an air lock” Marie explained and when she saw Lexa’s furrowed brow at the uncommon term she explained further “An air lock was so to say a door in front of the door to space from the Ark. When the air lock was sealed to the interior of the Ark the chancellor would press a button and a door to space opened. It sucked the body out. There is no air to breathe in space so you suffocate after a few minutes.”

Lexa nodded and thought about what Marie had just told her. It was no wonder Skykru would see her people as savages. They obviously had a completely different attitude towards life and death. Pressing a button was an easy way to end someone’s life. A coward’s way as her people would say. Skykru were in for a rude awakening when they recognized completely how brutal the world was into which they had fallen.

After a few moments of silence, Marie spoke up again and Lexa could see the hesitation the girl was obviously battling internally to speak at all “When the execution is over we will have peace with Skykru, right?”

Lexa nodded with a cautious expression, unsure of where the girl was going with her question. Much could still go wrong before there would be peace and going to war against the Mountain was far away from actual peace. They would have a treaty for the duration of the war preparations and the war, nothing more nothing less. Peace would mean a more binding and more stable solution.

Marie continued still visibly hesitant “Maybe Abby could look at Anya’s wound. I know that they have more possibilities to treat such a wound.”

Lexa had already opened her mouth to retort with an “absolutely not” when she actually thought about the suggestion. If they were to have a treaty, why not make use of it that way? So she changed her answer and said “We shall see what happens.”

Marie nodded obviously satisfied that her suggestion had not been rejected directly. The girl returned her attention to the parchment and repeated some of the new phrases silently in her head to better memorize them.

Lexa squeezed the girl’s shoulder once and stood up again to retrieve a whetstone from a trunk and pulled another stool from under the table. The commander sat down and took both of her swords from their sheaths putting her swords onto the table.

Marie admired the swords for a moment still fascinated with the weapons and with the elegance Lexa had wielding them.

Lexa started to hone first one blade and switched to the other when she was satisfied with the blade’s condition. She had always enjoyed the soothing monotony of honing a blade on a whetstone. Anya had drilled it into her head from the first moment she had been given an actual blade, how important it was to keep your blade as sharp and pristine as possible. She was able to let her thoughts wander while she honed the second blade.

Marie had stopped in her practise and was watching Lexa intently. The commander’s face looked utterly relaxed and the woman did not seem to pay any attention to her hands as if the motion was natural to her.

The short moment of peace was shattered, when shouts resonated through the camp. Indra’s warriors were on their way and they had Finn.

Lexa let out a breath she had not been aware of holding, while Marie’s heart plummeted into her stomach. Of course, she had known that Finn would be executed, but knowing what fate exactly waited for the boy made her stomach churn with dread. Silently, she wondered how many executions like that the commander had already been witness to and wondered whether she would one day look as calm as Lexa did now with the prospect of another one.

 

Chapter 39

Anya seemed to be in a worse state than the woman had let on, as the loud commotion outside the tent had not woken her from her slumber.

Lexa swiftly put her shoulder guard back on and motioned Marie to follow her outside. Stopping shortly in front of the exit of the tent, the commander said over her shoulder “If you are unable to watch, return to the tent. But it would be better if you stayed.”

Marie swallowed against the bile rising in her throat, but nodded with a resolute expression. She could not afford to be seen as a weakling by the warriors. The girl had understood that as the commander’s second her actions would be under constant watch from everyone and if she failed it would reflect badly on Lexa and Anya which was something she wanted to avoid as long as possible. She was afraid that she would not be able to watch without getting sick and she would have felt better if Anya stood beside her. It only increased her worry, that the woman had not woken and Marie wondered if she was in fact not asleep but rather unconscious.

It had gotten dark outside of the tent and the atmosphere in the camp sent a shiver through Marie’s slight frame. In the darkness the masked warriors looked even more threatening. Marie frowned when she realized that most of the others seemed overly excited with the prospect of Finn’s execution. A never ending chant of “jus drein, jus daun” resonated through the camp and it seemed as if most of the warriors had already gathered at the huge pole.

A path was cleared in front of the commander's tent immediately, when Lexa stepped outside and Marie noted how impassive and stony the leader's expression was.

Marie subconsciously kept as close to Lexa as possible, needing the reassurance the young woman radiated. She hoped that it would not show her as needy but convey her loyalty to the leader.

Indra and Gustus were already awaiting the commander at the edge of the crowd of warriors. Marie looked over the crowd of warriors, all under their masks and saw the lights from the Ark at the other end of the crowd. In front of the Ark separated from the warriors by a high fence, Marie could see her previous fellows. They seemed to have also gathered to watch the proceeding although in comparison to the excitement of the warriors, Skykru looked more afraid of what would happen.

Marie did not recognize the other three warriors that stood next to Indra and Gustus. Their armour and their masks were a tad bit more elaborate, so Marie guessed that they had to be other generals she yet had to meet. Inspecting the three strangers a bit more in detail, Marie detected that one of them was a woman while the others were clearly male. The female general was a bit more lithe than burly compared to her male companions, but all of them resonated physical strength in their appearances. She absentmindedly wondered, if she would ever look this imposing dressed in armour and ready for battle.

From the other side of the crowd, the girl could see two warriors leading Finn in their direction. The boy’s hands were bound and the warriors kept his elbows in a steady grip. Marie felt a sudden flash of compassion for the boy, when she saw his barely concealed panic. From what Marie had heard from Lexa and what her mind had added to it, the boy was right to be afraid of what was waiting for him. She highly doubted that anyone of the warriors would have informed Finn of the proceedings, but he would surely be aware of the fact that he would not leave this place alive again. 

To Marie Lexa looked like the perfect image of calm. The commander’s face was expressionless and she stood tall and unmoving, waiting for Finn to be brought to the pole and restrained, while Marie herself could not seem to stop fidgeting somehow.

At the least the crowd’s chant had finally stopped when Finn was in visual range of everyone and the atmosphere felt a tad bit less oppressive.

Movements from the other side of the crowd caught her attention and Marie could see someone hurrying out of the gates from the Skykru’s camp in their direction. A path was quickly cleared for whoever was approaching them.

Lexa had also noticed the movements, but kept her attention focused on the boy her warriors were chaining to the pole at the moment. The commander wondered if the boy might have had a chance on earth if their people had not clashed already, but that did not matter anymore. Marie had also returned her gaze to the pole where Finn now stood, his eyes looking over the crowd of warriors with fear prominent in them.

Indra suddenly had her spear in hand and pushed its point into whoever had come to them. Marie shifted slightly behind Lexa to see who it was and saw Clarke standing opposite of Indra. Although Clarke was speaking lowly, Marie could hear her words well enough “I am here to talk to your commander.” She was surprised slightly at the vehemence in Clarke's tone.

When Indra did not lower her weapon, Clarke seemed to walk into the blade and Marie was pretty sure the other girl was bleeding already from the pressure she put against the sharp metal. The blonde continued through clenched teeth “Let me through.”

“Let her pass” Lexa suddenly said and Indra instantly lowered her spear although Marie could see the reluctance in her eyes. The commander had turned into Clarke’s direction and looked at the blonde for a moment before she shook her head slightly “You bleed for nothing. You cannot stop this.”  After what Marie had heard about what a Skykru execution could potentially mean for Lexa, she could only agree in her mind. Finn alone had made the decision to kill the 18 innocent villagers and so he should have to take the punishment for his deed.

“Only you can” Clarke said with emphasis and looked at the commander with pleading eyes “Show my people how powerful you are. Show them you can be merciful.”

Marie could see Lexa processing the other’s words and she thought she might have detected a flash of empathy in her green eyes.

“Show them you are not a savage.” Clarke continued in a desperate voice.

Marie saw the commander’s frame becoming tense at Clarke’s words and Gustus and Indra shuffled behind thejr leader with blazing eyes, obviously deeply affronted by her words. Marie knew that Clarke should not have said her last sentence, it must have sealed Finn’s fate for good. If Lexa had even had the slightest consideration to spare Finn's life before, insulting their whole culture had surely nulled that instantly.

“We are what we are” Lexa said with fury evident in her green eyes and her face hard as stone.

It was evident to Marie, that Clarke was getting more and more desperate by the second, as the other girl must have recognized her failure to sway the commander already.

“I am a killer. I brunt three hundred of your warriors. I slid a man’s throat and watched him die. I am soaked in grounder blood” Clarke continued and Marie thought her voice sounded slightly trembling. She frowned slightly at the older girl's words, wondering if she truly thought that she could take Finn's place. Marie knew that the grounders believed in taking the punishment for their deeds with pride, so she doubted that something like taking the punishment for another was even possible.

Lexa only cast a short glance at Finn and looked back at Clarke, her face an expressionless mask and she remained resolutely silent.

“Take me” Clarke had started to plead in earnest now, voice shaky and tears glistening in her blue eyes.

The commander had to silently give the blonde leader credit for her bravery. It was obvious how much the boy must mean to her or she would not offer her own life in exchange to save his. But there was no possibility to take someone’s place in such a punishment, her people would never accept such a thing.

“Finn is guilty” Lexa only answered with a piercing stare. She could feel her warrior's restlessness rising with every passing moment and this discussion was not rewarding to anything.

Marie shortly glanced at Finn and the boy seemed to be watching their exchange with watering eyes. He must have been aware that changing his fate was impossible. Marie silently asked herself if the boy might not even think that he deserved the punishment he would get.

“No” Clarke denied vehemently “He did it for me”. Marie could see the blonde’s eyes watering as she repeated in a whiny voice “He did it for me…” Her voice completely gave out on her on the last words.

“Then he dies for you” Lexa said in an even tone and the commander seemed completely unmoved by Clarke’s admission.

Marie could see the hope Clarke had obviously still held onto desperately, vanish from her eyes and she let her shoulders sag in defeat. The blonde looked at Finn one more time, who had taken to looking at the sky above them, and looked back at the commander “Can I say goodbye?” she asked in a thick tone.

Gustus and Indra frowned at the question, but Lexa seemed to consider it for a moment, before she merely inclined her head to signal her permission.

Both of them watched as Clarke slowly went over to Finn and hugged him. They were standing too far away from the pole to hear the words the blonde was obviously whispering into his ears. From the shaking of Clarke’s shoulders, Marie was sure the older girl was crying now. She was not aware that the two of them had been particularly close, but they seemed to be now. Finn smiled at Clarke and whispered something back to her.

After a long moment what seemed like a small eternity later, Clarke finally moved away from Finn with tears streaming down her cheeks. Marie could see how Finn’s body had sagged in the chains and his head had fallen onto his chest and with a harsh breath she realized that Finn had already died. A small knife dripping with blood laid in Clarke’s hands and it took the warriors around the pole only a short moment before they also caught on to what had transpired.

Outraged shouts could be heard all around them and Indra and some others had already drawn their weapons again and were clearly intending on attacking Clarke.

Lexa looked shocked for a slight moment, before she pulled her warriors to a stop with a simple gesture of her hand. “It is done” the commander declared in a steady loud voice.

The approaching warriors stopped in their tracks but the murmurs of discontent continued. It was painfully obvious that the warriors did not feel appeased in their claim for justice in the slightest with the simple and quick way Finn had been killed now, not even at the hands of one of them.

“Bring Clarke into my tent and stay with her” Lexa said to Marie, giving the girl a slight nudge and nodded to Gustus to follow both of them. She needed to remain behind for a moment, making sure that her warriors accepted this as their justice and did not retaliate against Skykru without her order. Internally Lexa sighed deeply, she could fathom why the other leader had offered the boy a quick and painless death, but Clarke had only managed to increase the distrust from her warriors against Skykru.

Marie complied with Lexa’s orders instantly and stepped up to Clarke, hesitantly she touched the older girl’s elbow to get her attention as her gaze had been fixed on the sky above them. Clarke jerked away from the touch as if it had been a physical blow, but she looked at Marie after a moment and her eyes cleared somewhat and she readily followed Marie to the big tent.

Gustus trailed after them and stayed just outside of the tent to guard the blonde sky girl should any of their people seek the revenge they had been robbed off.

In the commander’s tent, Marie directly went behind the curtain to check on Anya. Anya’s condition alarmed her instantly and Marie’s grey eyes widened, fearing that Anya might be dying. The woman's face looked waxen and sweaty and her breathing seemed laboured and irregular.

When she went back behind the curtain to Clarke, the blonde had started sobbing and was desperately trying to rub away Finn’s blood from her hands.

Marie had no idea what to say to comfort her and the worry for Anya had her agitated as well. Unsure of what to do now, as Lexa had clearly told her to remain inside of the tent with Clarke, while it was obvious that Anya needed immediate medical attention, Marie stepped back to the entrance of the tent which directly alerted Gustus and she hurriedly told the bulky guard that Anya did not look well at all.

The man followed the girl into the tent shortly to see for himself if her words were not just exaggerated, he had seen already how worried the child was for the general. To his dismay, the girl had obviously spoken the truth and not exaggerated. “If someone comes in, defend yourself” Gustus said to Marie in an urgent tone, although he highly doubted her fighting skills would be enough to defend both of them, should anyone really try to harm the blonde young woman from Skykru for denying them their rights.

Marie bit her lips mutely and nodded in mute agreement. With a heavy heart, she watched the man leave the tent with quick strides.

Gustus had completely ignored Clarke, who seemed to have a nervous breakdown and was still scrubbing at her fingers with a hitching breath. The blonde seemed blind to her surroundings as well.

Marie was still thinking about what to say to her, when someone suddenly neared the entrance of the tent with loud footsteps. She took a deep breath, feeling her heart rate speed up in anticipation immediately and she tried to calm herself, she could not fall into a panic now. She was supposed to sort of guard Clarke after all and she would at least try to do so. Afraid that it might be an actual attacker, Marie drew the dagger from its sheath on her thigh and stood in front of Clarke in a defensive stance.

It was Abby followed closely by Kane who had entered the tent and the woman blinked at the young girl, taken off guard by the child facing them with a dagger raised in her hand.

Marie cleared her throat awkwardly, taking in a relieved breath and put the dagger back into its sheath immediately.

Abby immediately went around the girl to her daughter and enveloped her in a strong hug, while Clarke started to babble that she had to kill him to save him.

Marie swallowed harshly as she had no real idea what Clarke must be feeling right now, because she still had to make her first kill. Anya had told her already that the first kill would leave the most lasting impression in her mind.

Kane remained standing closely to the entrance of the tent and looked deeply troubled to watch the intimate scene between mother and daughter.

A sudden coughing sound from behind the curtain to the sleeping area of the tent, brought Marie out of her dark thoughts and she hurried behind it. Anya seemed to have trouble breathing and Marie felt panic overcome herself. Even though Lexa had not precisely given her permission to ask Abby to look at Anya, Marie was well aware that Skykru medicine was superior to what a grounder healer could do and it was obvious Anya was suffering.

“Abby” Marie loudly said when she stepped back behind the curtain.

The woman looked up from her position still pressing her daughter’s body close to her own and said “What is it?”

The woman’s voice did not sound angry, maybe only tired and resigned.

Marie urgently gestured behind the curtain and Abby slackened her hold on Clarke patting her blonde hair a last time before she followed the younger girl behind the curtain.

“She has a gunshot wound” Marie said unsure on what to say at all “Clarke escaped the Mountain with her” she added, as she hovered next to the bed indecisively. She frowned when Abby visibly hesitated next to Anya.

Clarke had obviously gathered herself again and had listened to them and joined them behind the curtain “Anya” she said disbelief colouring her voice.

“She escaped with you?” Abby asked her daughter needing confirmation.

Clarke nodded with a troubled expression “She was on her way back to the commander to start negotiations for a treaty but a guard shot her. I thought she had died…”

Marie swallowed harshly, even though she had already known that Skykru had been the ones that had wounded her mentor, it was still like a punch in the stomach to hear it again.

Abby had turned her attention to Anya and had bent down to take a look at the woman feeling her pulse and temperature first and last looking at the actual wound. When she put slight pressure on the area around the wound, Anya groaned obviously in a great deal of pain, but she did not wake up and Abby pulled away with a grave expression saying “Internal bleeding…”

 

Chapter 40

Marie felt her heart fall into the pit of her stomach at Abby’s words and she felt sick suddenly. She knew that an internal bleeding was hard to treat and could very well cost the woman her life for good now. She felt her eyes watering and she looked at Abby with wide grey eyes, internally hoping that the doctor would be able to save her mentor somehow.

The commander followed by Gustus and Indra had just entered in time to catch the last words Abby had spoken. Lexa breathed in deeply she knew that such an injury was rarely ever healed by their own healers.

“But you can save her?” Marie asked in a high-pitched voice laced with desperation, grey eyes pleading and glistening with unshed tears.

Lexa was unable to see the woman’s expression as the doctor and Marie had obviously not noticed their entrance yet, when the woman answered in a clipped tone “Not without an operation…”

As the woman’s words trailed off, Lexa cleared her throat loudly to make her presence known.

Marie immediately jumped away from Abby, like she had been caught committing a crime and her grey eyes shone with guilt at having engaged Abby without Lexa’s explicit permission. It was obvious that the child was aware of having overstepped and she could barely meet Lexa’s fierce gaze.

Abby and Clarke had also turned to the commander and her company quickly and it was obvious that Clarke had been crying only moments ago, her eyes puffy and still swimming in tears, rubbing at her cheeks quickly.

Her mother’s eyes looked at the commander disparagingly and it was clear to Lexa that they would probably never share common ground. She could not pinpoint yet what it was, but something about the older blonde woman was putting her on edge. None of her own people would have dared to show such a level of disrespect towards her.

“You have the equipment to save her?” Lexa asked in a calm measured voice. She had planned to make their way to TonDC immediately, burning the murderer and hopefully appeasing at least some of her people’s righteous anger, but it seems her plans had changed already. The girl’s words of using their shaky alliance in this way rand through her mind shortly.

The Skykru doctor nodded with a cautious expression “But only in the Ark and I cannot guarantee her survival. She seems to have lost much blood already” the reluctance to actually offer help to Anya was palpable in her features.

“Then heal her” Lexa commanded sharply with blazing eyes and sat onto her throne staring down on the woman, waiting for her agreement.

“What about the treaty. I will not…” Abby started to say, her voice growing louder with each word, anger and distrust colouring her voice.

Lexa’s lips thinned dangerously. Skykru obviously had no incline to what Clarke had just done. To kill someone before this kind of execution was treason and you would usually take the place of the one you had just saved. It happened very rarely among their people, they recognized the acceptance of a death penalty as the only chance to redeem honour before your death, so interfering with an execution was a sin of its own in their mind.

“We will do it” Clarke interjected vehemently, standing up to her mother with gleaming eyes. “I will do it myself, if you won’t” she added through clenched teeth, when her mother already began to shake her head in denial. She had left the general behind once, not exactly by choice, but she had also not truly cared to ask after her whereabout after waking up in the Ark. The general had told her that the commander had been her second, so they were bound to have been close, if they refused to heal her, Clarke was certain that their shaky chance for peace would die with her and she would have killed Finn for nothing.

Lexa silently wondered why the blonde was obviously determined to save Anya now, as she had left her to die before. She was certain that Indra would not appreciate the delay to her village, but that was not to be helped at the moment. The commander only nodded at the girl with an inquiring gaze. “Treat her” Lexa commanded sharply, when no one had said or done anything a few moments later “We will talk later” she added. She would not have truly thought to make treating Anya a requirement for their peace, but she would wait until she knew if the woman survived.

Abby looked at the commander with a slightly opened mouth, seemingly unused to being treated in such a way, but Clarke only nodded in mute agreement and pulled her mother along out of the tent.

It took Lexa only a few minutes to organize everything and Marie watched on impatiently. Four warriors entered the tent only short moments later, carrying something resembling a stretcher to transport Anya into the Ark on.

After a short discussion with Indra and Gustus it was decided, that the commander and her most trusted guards would also accompany Anya into the Ark, to make sure that no one would move to harm the general while she was unconscious and could not defend herself. Lexa only allowed Marie to also be a part of their little group, because the girl was more familiar with the Ark and Skykru. She doubted anyone would really try anything now, but as the commander she had learnt that you could never be too cautious with a mostly unknown enemy.

Marie had listened to the discussion with a baited breath, feeling the seconds tickle away quickly. She was acutely aware of Anya’s rattling breaths and she taped her feet impatiently, until the warriors finally entered with the stretcher. She watched on with a frown, how hoisted Anya’s body onto the stretcher and she looked up at Lexa expectantly, waiting for the woman to give the order to leave the tent.

Marie’s brows furrowed when they finally neared the Ark, the part of the Ark that functioned as the centre of the camp loomed in the darkness like a beast made of gleaming metal and made a slight shudder run through her frame. People she had once lived with still stood scattered in front of the Ark and nervous whispering broke out among them when the gates were opened for Abby, Kane, Clarke and their grounder entourage. Skykru were eying them suspiciously, as none of them had any clue what the commander could want in their camp and some were probably fearing retribution after Clarke had interfered with Finn’s execution.

The commander did not spare them more than a short glance over the crowd and Marie could see a certain admiration in her green eyes when she saw the Ark up close.

Having lived inside the ship, Marie immediately recognized that they only stood in front of a rather small part of the Ark but the grounders probably did not know that. Internally, she shortly wondered what might have happened to the other missing parts. Apparently, the ship which had been destroyed at the impact had also only been one station. She judged that what they were standing in front of, was only the Alpha Station, which meant that at least ten other stations might have landed somewhere else.

Stepping into the remaining part of the Ark, felt even weirder for Marie. The constant hum of the machines she had grown up with was still present, so someone had obviously been able to fix the electricity. During the days since their own fall to earth, Marie had grown used to the constant sounds of little birds or animals or even just the wind rustling a few leaves. Everything, from the sounds and even the stale quality of the air, felt totally off somehow to her now.

On their way through the metal corridors, Marie felt an awkward sense of melancholia as she remembered her childhood in those very walls. A glance at Lexa and the warriors that had accompanied them clearly, told her that the others felt completely uncomfortable in these alien surroundings. Marie would not have expected anything different, as Trikru people were used to the woods and the vast space of nature around them and not the constricting corridors of the Ark where basically every available centimetre had been put into use.

Abby, Markus and Clarke seemed tense as well and Markus more than once had to motion one of the guards to stand back and lower their weapons. Marie thought that all of them seemed to be on edge, aware that this could go horribly wrong still.

On their way to the medical bay, no one dared to approach them, apart from the guard. The people from Skykru they encountered seemed absolutely intimidated by the heavily armed soldiers with them. Abby had tried to get them to leave their weapons outside, but one resolute headshake in the negative from the commander had been enough to quell her objections.

Marie dearly hoped none of the guards would suddenly open fire with guns on them or there would be a horrible bloodshed, she still wondered how the scouts had obviously been able to kill some Skykru guards without any real losses.

Entering the medical bay was especially hard for Marie. She had been sure to never see this place again. Memories immediately flooded her mind. She saw her mother lying on one of the beds again with Abby tending to her and she remembered how her mother had still been lying on the same bed as she got thinner and weaker when the medicines failed to work for her. And finally, how she had tried to break into the medical bay to get more medicine for her mother who had been released into her own quarters to die. A sudden clicking noise had the girl wheeling around as her mind had catapulted her back into the night she had been caught and thrown into the sky box.

Lexa regarded the girl next to her worriedly. She had seen how the girl got more and more distant, after they had entered this place. The commander herself felt her skin crawling with the strange smell the air had and the constant hum was making her skittish. The whole place was making her feel rather claustrophobic and she wondered how Marie and the other Skykru had been able to live in this place and remain sane at the same time.

Another young man was already in the medical bay, when they entered. The man had an olive tint to his skin, dark hair and kind dark eyes. The man looked baffled, when the grounder group entered but it was obvious, he was a doctor as he immediately went over to assess Anya after the warriors had transferred her onto a bed Abby had indicated to.

“What happened?” he asked simply and already started to cut away the clothing on Anya’s upper body.

It was Abby who answered “Gunshot wound in the lower abdomen. It was a clean shot the entry and exit wounds have been burnt shut, but there seems to be internal bleeding” she told Jackson quickly, switching over to her professional mode immediately.

“How long ago has she been shot?” the man asked as he applied some pressure around the wound which made Anya moan out in obvious distress.

Clarke was the one to answer now “She was shot by our guards on the night I came back. We were in the Mountain together. The Mountain Men must have bled her a few times as she was physically completely drained when I got her out of the cage. So, it was six days ago now.”

Marie’s face looked pained as she listened to Clarke’s enumeration, inching slightly closer to Lexa subconsciously at the same time.

The man nodded while Abby had put on some gloves and critically looked at the commander “It would be easier if you just waited outside.” The presence of the warriors was distracting to her and she would be able to work easier without the weight of their burning gazes.

Lexa’s lips thinned and she mutely shook her head in denial. They had agreed to stay beside Anya, guarding the general as long as she was unconscious, she would not trust those people with the woman’s safety.

Abby just sighed in annoyance and together with the man, they started to work on Anya. They administered an anaesthesia first, waiting for it to take effect, simply trying to clean the wounded area beforehand.

The commander kept a close watch on what they were doing and when Abby made a cut over the sealed shut wound a copious amount of blood rushed out of Anya.

Marie sucked in a harsh breath at the sight, realizing that the burning of the entry and exit wound had actually just kept all the blood inside Anya’s body, but not done anything to repair the actual damage. She noted with increasing worry, how Abby and Jackson became more frantic, obviously trying to find the reason for the bleeding.

For the grounders it looked as if the Skykru healers were actually trying to kill Anya faster, as they completely reopened the wound and even enlarged the wound to search for the damaged blood vessels that had caused the internal bleeding. Clarke had stayed beside them and was constantly trying to explain what her mother and Jackson were doing to minimize the chance of the grounders interfering.

It seemed to take both of them a rather long time to spot the teared blood vessels and it took them even longer to seal them, so that the bleeding at least slowed.

Marie watched the heart rate monitor constantly, only feeling a little reassured that it still beeped in a rhythmic way.

In contrast to a grounder healer, who would mostly seal a wound shut by a heated blade, the Skykru healers took needles and thin threads to sew the now larger wound shut and they seemed to be doing several rounds of sewing. Lexa watched that with a raised brow, being completely unfamiliar with this kind of healing.

“You cannot sew deep wound in one go. Or the strain on the threads would be too strong and the underlying tissue has to be sewed separately for a normal wound healing” Clarke explained seeing the confusion on the other faces around her.

Abby and the man seemed to be worried on the strain the severe blood loss would have on Anya’s body, telling the commander that the woman might fall into shock, which would most likely kill her with her already weakened state. The doctor tried to explain that Anya definitely needed a blood transfusion to higher the likelihood the woman would survive the operation.

As the anaesthesia was leaving Anya’s body, Marie saw that her heart rate increased with each passing second.

All the grounders looked alarmed, when the heart rate monitor started to beep a shrill alarm only seconds later.

“She needs more blood” Abby said again with emphasis. As a doctor she had sworn to save peoples’ lives, so she wanted the woman to survive, it did not matter at the moment that she might be the enemy still.

Jackson had drawn a tiny amount of blood from Anya’s finger to make a quick test for her blood group, while Abby injected the unconscious woman with different medicines to try to counteract her still increasing heart rate. She had already hooked the woman onto a fluid injection to get some fluids into the body for the heart to pump, but that would not be enough.

“O positive” Jackson said after a minute with a frown on his face. That was exactly the blood type, they did not have at hand at the moment.

“What does that mean?” Lexa asked her frown deepening. She may not understand exactly what was happening, but it was obvious that Anya’s condition was worsening.

Clarkes answered her question in a hurry “You cannot just infuse any blood into anyone. The blood groups have to match. Anya is O positive. So, she can only receive O blood as well, anything else would cause another shock to the body and kill her. I am AB positive myself so I could not donate blood for her.”

“You can test me” Marie interjected from the side. The girl had no idea what her blood group was though, but she would help Anya in any way she could.

Jackson went over to one of the computers and typed something on the keyboard. “No need” he told the girl “We still can get into the main databases of the Ark and the medical files were all stored. You are O negative. You can donate for her.” The man seemed to let out a relived breath. It was a very rare blood group, so they had luck that Marie matched.

Lexa seemed inclined to interject the procedure, but Marie said to her “I want to help her. They won’t take enough blood to make me ill, but it might save Anya.” The girl’s grey eyes had shown with determination, so the commander had nodded and they all had watched as Abby sat the girl next to Anya’s bed and connected them with thin tubes.

It did only take a few minutes to set up everything and blood was already leaving Marie’s body and entering Anya’s. Marie watched the thin plastic tubes turn from translucent to a deep red with her own blood and she waited impatiently for the treatment to show an effect. Some more minutes later, Marie could breath easier again, when Anya’s heart rate was slowly decreasing to a normal level again.

She stayed connected to Anya for long moments, until Abby come over and removed the connections again. Marie made to stand up immediately and step back next to Lexa, but Abby forcefully pushed her back into the chair.

“You just donated quite a lot of blood. I want you to remain sitting in case you get dizzy” the doctor told the girl in a strict voice.

“What happens now?” Clarke asked, after Abby told them that the night would show if Anya truly survived.

The commander told Clarke unyieldingly “Tomorrow we will talk. There is something that needs to be done before we can talk about peace” bracing herself to wait through the night in this strange metal room.

Clarke seemed to blanch slightly murmuring “I thought we already had peace…”

 

 

 

 

Chapter 5: Chapter 41 - 50

Chapter Text

Chapter 41

The night proved to be a long and strenuous one for everyone involved.

Abby and Jackson had kept Anya under sedation, so that she could sleep and heal without the added stress of pain to her body. So far, the woman slept peacefully and no further alarm sounded, so the blood transfusion had obviously done its job.

Marie had remained sitting beside Anya’s bed for a long time, observing the others in the room from time to time. It was obvious to everyone in the room, that grounders and Skykru likewise were unnerving each other. Seeing members from both people in such a small room brought out the contrasts between them even more starkly.

Kane and Abby clearly had no intention to retire to bed as long as armed warriors were in the medical bay and Clarke seemed intent to stay as long as her mother would, in case she would anger the commander and her interference was needed.

The warriors all stood scattered around the room, still and stoic like statues. They had declined the offer of chairs and had even looked offended when Jackson tried to offer empty beds to them. Lexa herself stood between Marie’s and Anya’s bed, keeping watch over both of them and seemed content to just stand there.

The commander internally wondered if both of their people might just be a little too different to ever find enough common ground to achieve a lasting peace, beyond going to war against Mount Weather together. While all of her own people would have no problem to stand vigil through the night without having to speak a single word, the silence was obviously oppressive to Skykru.

Lexa’s lips thinned in rising irritation, when Abby tried several times to urge her to declare her requirements for peace between them right now and not on the next morning, as she had proclaimed earlier.

Marie had been with the other warriors long enough to know, that none of them talked just for the sake of talking. Grounders obviously did not feel the need to fill every second of silence with constant meaningless chatter. But that made everything they did deem important enough to say out loud even more important. What Marie had also noted so far was that the warriors were much more attuned to the body language of others so that there were silent conversations ongoing at all time. For her it had started to make sense that a warrior could not waste precious breath and lose his focus to meaningless chatter, as they had all been trained too well for that.

Marie began to jaw deeply a long time later, she had tried to fight off her exhaustion, but it had still been obvious.

Lexa minutely stepped closer to the girl, giving her shoulder a mute nudge to lie down. “Sleep” the commander ordered the girl lowly and when she was met with defiance glinting up in the child’s grey eyes, she added “Rest, you have done enough for now, we shall keep watch over Anya”.  She stayed standing beside the girl’s bed, until Marie had finally laid down and closed her eyes. It did not take long for the child’s breathing to even out, indicating that she had drifted off.

Marie was jostled from her sleep when someone shook her shoulder some time later. When she blearily blinked her grey eyes open, Lexa’s green eyes looked down into hers. “It is time to leave” the commander told her young charge in an even voice. After stretching out her limps slightly, Marie sat up and slid down from the bed, immediately stepping closer to Anya’s bed and peering down at the woman.

To her great internal relief, Anya was obviously still alive. Her chest was rising and falling visibly and Marie thought that her breathing did not sound as laboured anymore. Anya’s skin thankfully had lost some of its utter paleness and did not look as if she was running a fever.

She had no idea how much time might have passed. There were no windows in the medical bay, so it was impossible to assess if the night had already passed and it was morning again or still in the middle of the night. Lexa and the other grounders did not appear particularly exhausted and Marie wondered why it seemed that all of them were not affected at all by standing vigil through the night. She somehow highly doubted that anyone of them would have even sat down. The commander was still standing in the exact same spot she already had, when Marie had drifted off to sleep previously

Abby was standing on the other side of Anya’s bed who still lay unconscious, with frustration etched deeply into her features.

The doctor looked deeply exhausted, her clothes and hair dishevelled, as if she had pushed her fingers through her hair more than once during the hours and dark shadows of exhaustion had formed under her eyes, her whole expression looked drawn, so Marie gathered that the night had probably truly already passed by now. She remembered with relief, how Abby had said that Anya surviving through the night would determine her overall survival and she could not stop but hope, that it meant that the woman would be saved by the operation.

“You cannot transport her into your camp right now” Abby said in a high-pitched voice to the commander, expression tight and glaring at the younger woman in exasperation.

Lexa just looked at the woman with a determined expression for a few moments and before she said “You said she is out of immediate danger. We will not remain longer than necessary.” The commander nodded to the warriors who had carried Anya into the Ark the previous night and they moved to hoist the woman back onto the stretcher immediately.

“It is not…” Abby tried again and Marie concluded that this argument had obviously already started while she was still asleep, although she had no idea how she could have slept through that.

Gustus and Indra who were both still present looked ready to strangle the Skykru doctor at any moment. Marie had never before seen anyone argue with the commander in such a fashion as Abby was doing at the moment and Lexa’s expression clearly portrayed how annoyed she was with the doctor.

“Mom” Clarke intervened from the side in a strident tone and vehemently shook her head. The girl was the only one with any experience to interact with the grounders and knew that her mother trying to dissuade the commander from taking Anya now, was not helping them at all. “When will we talk?” she asked instead, diverting the leader’s attention to herself and away from her mother.

Abby had obviously admitted defeat and stepped back from the bed, so that the warriors could hoist Anya up, although she was still shaking her head.

The commander turned to the young blonde woman and answered calmly “In an hour from now” with that, she motioned Marie to step closer and placed a hand on the child’s shoulder possessively, turning her around slightly and nudging her into movement mutely. Lexa hoped that the doctor would learn soon to mind her place and tongue around her, or she would take great personal pleasure in reminding her of her place and removing her tongue for her. The older woman had had the impertinence to try and argue with her again, about Marie’s rightful place being with Skykru. The commander knew, that it would have only taken mere moment for her own patience to run out with the infuriating woman, when thankfully Clarke had managed to shut her mother up.

The walk back through the Ark, was silent as well. It was obviously still very early, as there were only very few guards awake right now. Back in the camp of the army, that looked slightly different, Marie guessed that at least a third of all of them was awake, but no one interfered with their way.

Marie watched as the warriors brought Anya into the commander’s tent. but something else caught her attention. Guards stood scattered around the place where Finn had been mercy killed by Clarke during the previous night. His body had been removed from the pole and Marie could see someone sitting to a form on the ground, which she guessed to be Finn’s body.

Lexa had also seen this and asked a guard next to her tent “Who is that?” her voice impatient and sharp.

The young man looked over to the kneeling figure for a second before he answered “Raven kom Skykru. She refused to leave the body and we did not know …” The man trailed off obviously uncomfortable.

The commander just nodded and when she saw Alira hurrying to her tent laden with a big tray, she stepped inside with Marie trailing behind her. Lexa was relieved to finally be able to get rid of the heavy shoulder guard and long red sash even only for an hour.

Marie also shrugged out of the dark green leather coat and helped Alira with the tray when the handmaid entered the large tent.

In the same moment as both of them had started to eat and Alira left the tent, Indra, Gustus and Sierra entered. Marie’s fleeting smile at being back froze when she spotted the scouts scathing glare.

Both women seemed to be angry, while Gustus looked more worried. Marie heard Lexa sigh deeply next to her, but the commander just continued eating and gulped down some of the warm wine, ignoring their company completely.

It was actually Sierra who seemed to lose her patience with being ignored by the commander and spoke up first “Lexa, you cannot…”

The commander quickly whirled around from her sitting position to face the other woman and they suddenly stood opposite of each other with barely any space left between them and Lexa glared at her friend for her insolence.

The other women seemed to shrink under her intensive glare and lowered her head in defeat apologizing quickly and stepping a pace back.

“What is it?” Lexa asked through clenched teeth, her patience obviously running thin at the moment.

The dark-skinned general looked back at Lexa with an unwavering stare “There is discontent in the army because of what the Skygirl has done.”

Lexa exhaled loudly straightening her shoulders, she had feared that reaction, but she truly had not foreseen that Clarke would kill the boy out of mercy. But she had seen the girl crying afterwards and she knew that her suffering would be worse than the boy’s might have been, as the blonde leader would need to live with what she had done for the rest of her days. “We need Skykru to face the Mountain” Lexa spoke in a clear voice “I did not foresee Clarke killing the murderer or I would have not granted her the possibility to say her goodbyes” The commander seemed to consider something for a silent moment “The murderer will be joined by fire with those he killed.”

Indra did not seem satisfied with that solution “We were owned our justice, commander” she seethed, dark eyes blazing angrily.

Lexa nodded with a grave expression “The boy’s blood has been spilled. Not in the way we wanted it but he is dead now, Indra. There is nothing I can do to change that.”

The general also nodded now, although she still did seem anything but pleased with the outcome. Sierra also looked displeased, but she obviously knew better than to speak up now after she had just overstepped mere moments ago.

Before anyone said anything else, a guard outside the tent announced the arrival of the Skykru delegation. Lexa called out to the guard to let them pass and quickly put on her shoulder guard together with the red sash again.

A moment later, Clarke entered closely followed by Abby and Kane. All three of them looked weary to be here, even though Clarke at least tried to look confident.

Lexa had sat down on her throne and Gustus had moved to her right side “Blood has answered blood. Some on my side say that it is not enough. They wanted the murderer to suffer as our tradition demands” the commander said with a carefully blank face.

“But they do not know that your suffering will be worse” Lexa said looking deeply into the blonde’s blue eyes with a slight hint of compassion in her green ones “What you did last night will haunt you until the end of your days.”

Clarke swallowed harshly, biting her lips and reverted her eyes to the floor of the tent obviously unable to meet the commander’s piercing gaze any longer.

“Still there will be restitution. The body will be given to the people of TonDC. Murder and murdered joined by fire. Only then can we have peace” Lexa finished her demands in a calm tone.

Abby and Clarke both seemed speechless for a moment, so Kane spoke up “No, no. We have done enough. The boy should be buried by his own people” the man said with conviction in his voice.

“Enough” Indra interjected with a taunting voice “We were owed the pain of eighteen deaths, we were owed our righteous kill. My village deserves justice.”

“You do not want justice” Abby spoke up now clearly agitated “All you want is vengeance.”

“You have not seen my vengeance” Indra seethed and stepped closer to Abby, her grip on her sword becoming tighter as the tension rose in the tent.

“We’ll do it” Clarke suddenly said in an empty voice “But when it is over, we talk about how to get our people out of Mount Weather, all of our people.”

“We want the same thing, Clarke” Lexa said evenly, only looked at the blonde.

“Good” Clarke answered “When do we leave?” she asked, wanting things to move along as quickly as possible.

“Now” came the short answer from the commander, as the woman stood up from her throne again “Chose your attendants”.

Clarke only nodded her hear slightly as a sign of acceptance as Lexa followed by Gustus, Sierra and Indra moved out of the tent.

Marie hurried to stand up from the table, she had watched the scene from and followed the commander, but she could still hear Clarke and Abby conversing with each other. Abby clearly did not want to obey the condition set by the commander, while Clarke simply told her that this alliance had to hold or she would have killed Finn for nothing.

When she had caught up with the commander, Lexa was already organizing the party that would accompany her to TonDC. After the woman had given her orders to Gustus and Indra, they departed to carry them out immediately.

Lexa turned to her young charge and told her “You can try riding on your own this time. We won’t be travelling fast and the terrain is mostly even. Skykru will travel on foot, as will some of our warriors.”

Marie nodded and smiled slightly as she looked forward to riding again, but her brows furrowed soon after “What about Anya?” she asked hesitantly, voice tinted deeply with worry.

The commander said “She will be transported in a wagon. The war council will meet in TonDC, so we might stay there for a while.”

In a distance, Marie could see Clarke arguing with Raven who was still sitting beside Finn’s body. Obviously, Clarke had gotten her point across, as Raven suddenly stormed away, so that the two grounder warriors could take Finn’s body to wrap it for transport.

It took a shorter time than Marie had thought possible for everyone to get ready to leave and move to TonDC. She had followed Lexa to the improvised stables and was presented with a hazelnut coloured mare that whinnied friendly at her, when she held up her hand for the horse to sniff at.

Their party was led by a few warriors on foot, followed by a wagon pulled by a black huge horse. Finn’s body wrapped in an orange material lay on it, together with Anya buried under some furs and Raven was allowed to also sit down on it because of her hurt leg making it impossible for her to walk this distance.

Abby had checked on Anya directly before they had left, adding another fluid transfusion to make her stable for transportation. The doctor had argued that it would be better for the woman to remain behind health wise, but Lexa would hear none of it.

After the wagon came the Skykru who all travelled on foot. Clarke and Bellamy proceeded, Abby and Kane, and Octavia and Lincoln. Marie had expected some of her companions to greet Lincoln in a friendly manner, so the girl was perplexed when no one actually spoke a word to him at all.

After three guards on foot, they were riding. Lexa had been right and they were travelling very slowly, Marie thought that she could have probably kept the pace on foot easily enough, but the hazelnut horse proved to have a gentle nature and she instantly took a liking to the creature. She rode on Lexa’s side, who had mounted her white steed and Gustus rode on the commander’s other side. The only other grounder on a horse was Indra, who followed behind them together with several others who travelled on foot.

To Marie’s great chagrin, Sierra also travelled with them and walked beside her father’s horse. For her it was difficult to imagine them as father and daughter, as she had never seen them interact besides in their duties to the commander. It was obvious, the woman still had not taken a liking to her and she had felt her eyes on her the entire time, when Gustus had helped her to mount her horse back in the camp.

“You are awfully quiet” Lexa commented after they had ridden some time, glancing at her young charge “But I see that your riding has improved. We shall practice at a faster pace, when it is possible.”

Marie just shrugged her shoulders, pulled out of her musing and kept her gaze locked on the muddy road ahead of them.

Stop worrying Gustus” Lexa said now, turning to her guard and the commander could see Sierra also listening intently “Like you have always told me, all alliances are risky.

This is not the same as uniting the twelve clans. The Sky people are different” the burly man answered in a serious voice.

Yeah, they are more like the Mountain Men than us” Sierra interjected with a short glare at Marie.

It could kill our coalition” Gustus added lowly, with worry evident in his dark eyes.

“Our coalition, or me?” Lexa asked, her gaze switching between Sierra and Gustus, daring them to answer in an offending way.

You are the coalition, commander” Gustus said in a reverent tone.

Lexa looked at his face for a second, before she answered in an even tone “Then do your job and protect me.”

Gustus just looked ahead of them again and silence settled between them again.

It was only when darkness started to fall, that the commander finally called their group to a stop to make camp for the night.

 

 

Chapter 42

Marie wasn’t able to help much, when they started to set up the camp for the night. The only tent that would be erected at all, would be one for the commander. The tent was slightly smaller than the one Lexa had in TonDC, but it was big enough that Anya had already been laid down on one side and Marie and Lexa could still both sleep comfortably in it together with the unconscious woman.

When the camp had been set, it was completely dark and the warriors had lit some fires around the clearing they had chosen to camp in. It was as if someone had drawn an invisible line through the camp. Skykru remained on one side, while the warriors remained on the other side. Marie watched with a frown how Lincoln only shortly glanced towards Indra, finding the woman’s expression hard and dismissive.

Abby had come into the tent shortly to look at Anya’s wound again, worried that the constant movements of the wagon might have teared some stitches. The woman had been administered with another sedation, before they had left but Lexa declined to give her another. So, Marie hoped that Anya would wake up again soon, just to be sure that she actually could still wake up. The utter stillness of Anya's body beside the movements her breathing caused, was unnerving and Marie longed for it to end.

After the long hours in the saddle, Marie was relieved to finally feel solid ground under her feet again and Lexa had to steady her for a moment, after she dismounted as her legs felt strangely wobbly and unsteady.

The commander had smirked slightly at her and said in a teasing voice “You will get used to the sensation with more practise. Your muscles still need to get used to it.” Lexa could still distinctly remember the first time she had been forced to ride through several days and Anya had let her fall face first into a puddle of mud after the sixth’s day, only standing beside her and laughing at her for long moments, before she offered a hand to hoist her back to her feet.

Marie had been handed some food to bring to the Skykru, as no one else seemed willing to reach out to them and the child had asked to do something to contribute as well and after she had distributed it, she heard the exchange between Lincoln and Indra, but she was unfamiliar with the word.

So, when she returned to the fire in front of the commander’s tent, she lowly asked Gustus “What does natrona mean?” she was hesitant to approach the burly warrior, but she could not see Lexa anywhere.

“It means traitor” Gustus said evenly, not looking up from his own food.

Marie still looked confused and asked “Why would Indra call Lincoln that?” as a frown settled on her features.

Now the man did look up and studied the young girl for a moment. It was evident she really asked only out of genuine curiosity with the need to understand their ways. He would have assumed her to be ignorant and dumb, if he had not seen the way the commander seemed to always try to understand the child's point of view. He had tried to advise Sierra on a similar approach with Marie. It was obvious that the child would stay with Lexa, the commander had made up her mind on the matter and as long as the girl did not commit a serious crime, which he thought to be highly unlikely, her place as the commander’s second was almost set in stone now. He agreed with his daughter in her estimation of the rest of Skykru though and he could not end for this alliance to come to an end.  “Out of two reasons. First he had been a Reaper and they turn onto our own people” Gustus told her lowly with intent dark eyes “And he obviously chose the dark-haired Sky girl.” His gaze flitted over to the pair minutely, it was extremely rare for two people from different clans to get involved with each other in such a fashion.

Marie looked over to the other side of the camp, where she could make out Octavia and Lincoln kissing each other passionately. She looked away again with a slight grimace of disgust, she could not fathom what could be so appealing with kissing someone.

Lexa returned a few minutes later, with Sierra in tow. Both of them looked frustrated as if they had just argued with each other and had been unable to reach an agreement. But the commander ordered the scout to do a search through their surroundings to be sure, so the other woman left without another word.

When they had both eaten and Lexa wanted to turn in for the night for a few hours of rest, Marie was thrilled to note that Anya seemed to wake up. The woman had started to move slightly and it did take her only a few more minutes until Marie could again see her brown eyes fixed on her own.

“It is good to see you coherent again” Lexa said in an honest tone as she stripped out of her armour.

“What happened?” Anya asked in a confused and groggy tone and carefully felt at her midriff, where a clean bandage rested over her wound. Too clean and white to come from one of their own healers.

“You had an internal bleeding” Marie immediately answered with worry in her grey eyes “And Abby operated on you and I donated some blood to you” she enumerated and smiled at the woman with a hint of pride at having contributed something to save the woman's life.

Anya’s brows furrowed in obvious silent horror at the mention of the blood transfusion, so Marie quickly said “I wanted to…” her tone was honest and her grey eyes intent, she would have never forgiven herself if she had just stood beside and watched her mentor die like that.

Anya nodded obviously still confused and said “Where are we?” noting that they were not residing in the commander's bigger tent anymore.

“On the way to TonDC” Lexa said as she had finished undressing and laid onto her furs in tight trousers and a thin top “To burn the murderer’s body alongside the murdered. Clarke killed him…”

 The general’s brown eyes widened slightly as she processed the information “That is not good…” she commented with a frown, knowing what this could mean for her previous second in the future.

“No” Lexa said matter of factly in agreement “But it cannot be helped now. After we burn the bodies, we will plan our war against the Mountain. Rest now, both of you, it is still some distance before we reach TonDC.”

It did not take Marie long at all to fall asleep that night. The ride had been more exhausting than she thought and they had travelled through most of the day. Even though sleep came easily, she did not remain untroubled.

Not long after the girl had fallen asleep, Lexa was woken by the girl’s constant turning and twisting under the furs. Just as Lexa sat up with a sigh to wake her Marie, the girl shot upright with wide frightened eyes screaming “Noooo!” loudly through the small tent, voice contorted in horror.

Her grey eyes were unfocused, when Lexa touched the girl’s shoulder to get her attention. Only after Marie had blinked a few times and took in some shuddering breaths, did her eyes clear momentarily before they misted over with tears.

“Hey” Lexa softly spoke to her young charge as Anya somehow had slept through even the screaming “It was just a dream” she reassured the agitated girl lowly.

Marie nodded and while she glanced at Anya’s sleeping form beside her shortly, her tears spilled over and she said between sobs “It was Anya on the tree … not Finn … and you said I could say goodbye … I … I killed her …. I …”

“Shh” Lexa softly soothed the girl and pulled her trembling body firmly against her chest. “It was only a dream” Lexa kept on repeating the words reassuringly as she gently stroked the girl’s blonde hair.

 After some time, the girl had simply fallen asleep again in their embrace and Lexa pulled the girl’s body with her under her furs and closed her eyes again to also sleep for a bit more. The rest of the night thankfully passed without any further disruption. 

In the morning, Marie went into the woods out of sight of the camp to relieve herself. She was already on her way back to the camp, when she suddenly heard a conversation, prompting her curiosity at what was going on to spark. Trying to be as silent as possible, Marie went closer to the voices and could see Gustus and Sierra, obviously in the middle of a heated argument.

“You cannot mean to do nothing, father” the dark-haired woman snarled at Gustus, who had his arms crossed over his chest.

The man shook his head “And what should I do? Heda’s orders are clear. Skykru are with us now” the man said and added more silent “I hope Lexa knows what she is doing…”

“Exactly” Sierra answered stepping closer to the burly man “We cannot let something happen to Lexa. The kongeda would fall. Skykru must fall instead” she concluded darkly.

“No” Gustus emphasized and shook his head “This is not for us to decide. We must have faith in Lexa’s decision.” His words did not seem to have any affect on his daughter.

“You will see, she will fall if we don’t save her” Sierra answered hotly, glaring at her father.

“Don’t do anything rash” Gustus said harshly to his daughter and it looked like he had intended to say more, but before he could say anything else, Indra suddenly appeared from the direction the camp lay in ordering them to return the camp, as the commander wanted to move on.

Marie’s thoughts were reeling as she made a short circuit, so that she would not come from the same spot Gustus and Sierra would enter the camp. On her way back, she was thinking about whether to tell Lexa about what she had overheard directly or wait until later.

The decision was made for her, when Sierra and Gustus both were already standing next to the commander.

Anya had obviously also gathered enough strength again to walk, as the woman stood beside Lexa as well.

Marie smiled widely at the woman when she caught her eyes. Her smile fell slightly, when the commander told her that Anya would ride the hazelnut horse for the rest of the way and Marie herself could walk. The muscles on her legs were already sore from the previous day and the long hours riding, so she doubted that walking a long distance would help with the pain. But when she noticed Sierra’s disparaging glare hefted onto herself, Marie straightened slightly and just nodded mutely.

She had walked slightly behind the horses for some time with Indra, who completely ignored her presence as the path was too narrow to walk beside the horses.  The longer they walked, the more her legs started to ache and Marie already prayed that their way would not be long.

She was surprised when Gustus slowed his horse some time later to walk beside her and held his hand to her and hoisted Marie into the saddle in front of him saying gruffly with a teasing glint in his dark eyes “I couldn’t bear to watch your suffering any longer”.

Marie just huffed mutely in slight affront, but was internally grateful to have the possibility to rest her legs now.

Both Anya and Lexa had watched the exchanges with smirks on their faces, but they wisely kept silent.

Sierra darkly glared at Gustus once and then slowed her walking pace to walk with Indra from now on.

The rest of the way to TonDC passed in companiable silence and Marie enjoyed watching the nature around them as the sun came out along the way. There were still so many new trees and plants around them, that she felt she would never get to know all of them.

In front of TonDC, Gustus dismounted the black horse and helped Marie down quickly.

Lexa also dismounted and waited for Anya to do the same, standing close to the general to offer help if needed.

Marie saw that Lincoln, who had walked with Skykru, had already taken out the knife he carried and put it into a huge basket, Gustus had taken from the side and told the other Skykru that they would have to disarm, before they were allowed to enter.

She watched as Gustus went between the members of Skykru and searched the others for weapons and before he was finished, Sierra had suddenly stepped up to Raven and pulled out a hidden knife from her jacket.

“All clear” Gustus finally called to Lexa, who nodded and proceeded the group into the village.

At first the inhabitants of TonDC were happy to welcome back their commander, before they saw the other Skykru behind them. Shouts of outrage resonated through the village and some were loudly demanding the death of them and Marie looked at Anya in alarm. The villagers had mostly been friendly to her, after she had been with them for a few days and now she did not recognize them any longer.

Suddenly a man stepped in front of Lexa, blocking the commander’s path and he loudly said “Sky people took everything from me: my wife, my child”

Gustus firmly ordered the man to step back and let them pass, but the man obviously did not want to listen and said venomously “Murderers are not welcome here”.  His words were met with nods of approval from the other inhabitants of TonDC.

Lexa had nodded to Gustus, who immediately stepped in front of the commander and started beating the man up, who obviously stood no chance against the burly guard.

Marie watched with frightened eyes and felt Anya laying an arm around her protectively from behind.

The grounders did not seem surprised to see the proceedings, only the Skykru looked slightly distraught.

Gustus kept on beating up the man, until Clarke stepped up to the commander and urgently said “Please, make him stop. They will blame us for that too.”

Lexa seemed to consider her words for a moment, before she said “Let him live”.

 Gustus let up on the man at once, who remained on the ground coughing up some blood and with a bleeding nose, someone went over to help him up.

The commander turned around to face the villagers and loudly proclaimed “The Sky People march with us now. Anyone who tries to stop that, will pay with their life.”

Some of the villagers nodded their agreement, while others just remained silent.

Anya winced slightly when she removed her arm around Marie. The girl turned around with worried eyes fixed on Anya’s midriff “Are you in pain?”

Lexa had watched her former mentor and suddenly stood beside them, telling Anya lowly “Rest. You will do me no good, if you don’t get well.”

Anya grudgingly nodded and left, while Marie watched as people quickly erected a pyre. Eighteen wrapped corpses were propped against the pyre, while Finn’s body was placed on top of the pyre.

“People of TonDC, in fire we cleanse the pain of our past” Lexa said loudly, while Marie could hear Lincoln lowly translating for Skykru.

Marie stood beside Lexa, when Gustus handed her a lighted torch.

The commander waited for a moment considering something, before she called Clarke to her side handing over the torch.

 Indra, Sierra and the other inhabitants of TonDC seemed less than pleased that Clarke was the one to light the pyre. But their grimaces lessened, when Clarke said “Your fight is over” when she finally lighted the pyre.

Marie could see Raven crying silently, while Clarke looked pale and distraught. Lexa and Gustus in comparison looked perfectly calm.

“I lost someone special to me too. Her name was Costia” Lexa suddenly broke the silence, addressing Clarke.

Marie had stood beside Lexa, while the commander waited with Clarke for the pyre to burn to the ground. Marie noted that most of the others had already left the pyre.

“She was captured by the Ice Nation, whose queen believed she knew my secrets. Because she was mine …” Lexa’s voice sounded graver than normal, although her face did not betray any emotion “They tortured her … killed her, cut of her head.”

Marie swallowed harshly, not wanting to interrupt, while Clarke said “I am sorry”.

“I thought I’d never get over the pain, but I did” Lexa said evenly.

“How?” Clarke interrupted in an almost dejected sounding voice.

The commander tightened the grip on her sword slightly, as she answered in a voice void of any emotion “By recognizing it, for what it is. Weakness.”

Marie had to swallow harshly and felt the need to comfort the commander somehow, but the woman was not paying her any attention at the moment, as she had turned to fully face Clarke now.

“What is? Love?” Clarke asked in an incredulous voice, as Lexa just nodded as a simple answer. Clarke shook her head “So, you just stopped caring about everyone. I could never do that.”

“Then you put the people you care about in danger” Lexa said seriously “And the pain will never go away. The dead are gone, Clarke, but the living are hungry.”

The commander turned away from Clarke, leaving her obviously speechless as Marie gauged from her expression and she hurried to follow Lexa. She had thought the woman would directly go into the hall where a feast was to be held to celebrate the new alliance. But Lexa went to look how Anya was doing first and Marie silently trudged behind her. Anya was still asleep, but seemed to be doing fine and Lexa turned away from her after a moment.

“Lexa?” Marie approached the woman cautiously, not sure if her approach would be welcomed or not.

The woman looked at her young charge with a silent question to continue in her eyes.

Marie swallowed once, before she stepped even closer to the commander and grasped one of her hands, squeezing her hand once and said with compassionately shining eyes “I am sorry that you lost Costia like that.”

Surprise flashed over the commander’s face for a moment, before a melancholic smile settled on her lips as she answered the squeeze on her hand softly “Thank you for compassion. But we need to go to the feast.”

 

Chapter 43

The feast the commander was giving in honour to the newly found alliance to Skykru took place in one of the old buildings, that had remained after the bombs. Marie was fascinated with every piece of the old world she now encountered. She had seen and hear a lot in old films and books, but seeing remnants of the old world was still different now. So many things had been left behind, but had weathered down with age, that they had been put to a different use. 

It was slightly dark in the room, but candles and torches had been placed all around the room, basking it in warm and golden flickering light. Marie was convinced that she would never again enjoy the harsh glow of an artificial light, after getting used to the soft and homely atmosphere the flame of a candle conveyed.

Huge tables stood in the middle of the large room and were all heavily laden with a variety of food. Marie was intrigued by the vast variety of all the things, she was unable to identify even half of it and she even noticed when what looked like a whole pig was put onto the table as well.

She had entered together with the commander and Lexa told her to take the seat next to her, so that she was placed between Lexa and Gustus.

Indra also had been assigned a seat on the table, as did some others Marie was not yet familiar with. In addition, some people, and under them she recognized Sierra, stood slightly behind the table in front of the wall and waited, posture proud and expression stoic.

Across from them, the seats had remained empty for their guests and Lexa nodded to one of the guards to signal for Skykru to come in, when she was satisfied with the setup.

It took the Skykru delegates only a few moments to enter the building, proceeded by Clarke who still looked visibly shaken by the events of the last days. The older blonde girl looked pale and tired, while her blue eyes seemed skittish and it looked, as if she might have been crying again only recently.

After a short few words from the commander, Marie silently watched as Markus offered a bottle with a clear liquid to the commander as a gift of sorts for their alliance.

Marie had never gotten any alcohol on the Ark, as the consumption had been illegal for minors. She knew that quite a few of the other delinquents had been incarcerated because they broke this particular rule.

But she guessed that the bottle would be containing some form of alcohol, as Markus cautioned the commander not to drink too much of it at once.

Lexa did not show any reaction to the advice, while she could see Marie frowning slightly beside herself and she mentally had to agree with the girl that her people were definitely more used to consume wine and beer on a daily basis than Skykru would be. In some of the feast she had held in Polis, warriors had indulged in drinking matches, so it was seen as weak not to be able to drink much. As the commander she rarely indulged in the overconsumption of alcohol, it was dangerous for her to numb her senses, if she did not know if an assassin might be lurking around the next corner. Still, she had grown up with alcohol, when safe water was not available, consuming wine was always preferred.

Markus looked genuine in his will to gift something to the commander, so she accepted the gift with a mere incline of her head. Lexa offered the honour to share their first drink to Clarke and asked her to drink together with her from the gifted bottle. Lexa herself poured some of the clear liquid into two cups and offered one to Clarke.

Before the commander could take a sip, Gustus stepped forward slightly and said “Heda, allow me” clearly intent on trying the drink before his commander would ingest the thing.

Marie silently wondered if it was really necessary to try the drink beforehand. She remembered how Tris had joked about the fact that the food and water she had been given in TonDC was safe to consume and in fact not poisoned. She had not even considered the possibility of a poison being involved, but now she wondered if she had been overly naive in just taking Tris' offers blindly. She highly doubted that anyone would be foolish enough to try and poison Lexa though. To her great horror, she was proven wrong only short moments later.

Gustus had drunken a bit of the drink from Lexa’s cup and when Lexa toasted to Clarke for the alliance and pulled the cup to her own lips, the burly man suddenly started to gag and cough.

Marie whirled around to the man, not understanding at first what was happening at all. She took in his condition with worried grey eyes, flitting between Gustus and Lexa, hoping that the commander would explain, the rage she saw flashing over the woman’s features, startled her slightly.

Gustus collapsed, still coughing against the wall, as another of the warriors suddenly shouted in outrage that the drink must have been poisoned.

Marie saw that Bellamy knocked the cup from Clarke’s hand, before the older blonde girl could even take a sip herself and suddenly Indra blamed Skykru and had her sword drawn, ready to attack them.

Chaos broke out in the room in the blink of an eye and Marie moved back from the tables towards the wall, looking at Gustus with worried grey eyes.

Nyko had already moved to the man and was speaking with him in a hushed tone, probably trying to figure out on how to help him. Marie absentmindedly wondered how a grounder healer could even treat a poison. She distinctly remembered hearing in an old film that a poison needed to be neutralized by an antidote or the stomach of the person who had ingested the poison could be emptied, if it was slow acting enough. But she highly doubted, that the healers would still use this technique and she was also fairly certain that you would need to know the poison which was used to be able to administer a matching antidote. 

Clarke loudly addressed Lexa “It wasn’t us” she proclaimed loudly in a desperate tone “You have to know wasn’t us!”

But Lexa ignored the Skykru leader for now and had also moved to Gustus, telling Nyko urgently “Don’t let him die” in a seething tone and her green eyes blazed.

Marie’s eyes widened slightly at the woman’s words, as her brain had not caught up to the fact that the poison may indeed have been lethal. 

Indra took control of the situation quickly “Everyone out and I want them searched!” The warriors around them immediately sprung into action, forcing the members of Skykru into one corner of the room and roughly searching through their clothing.

“No. No, we didn’t do this” Clarke repeated again to Lexa, as the commander marched up to the blonde girl with blazing eyes and her face reflecting fury.

Marie still stood at the wall, as Nyko grabbed the discarded bottle with the alcohol and others helped Gustus to his feet hauling him out of the room, with the healer immediately following them. 

“Gustus warned me about you, but I didn’t listen” Lexa snarled at Clarke in unrestrained anger.

“Lexa please” the blonde tried to sooth her somehow, but her face showed her desperation and fear at how quickly the situation had gotten out of hand.

“Tell me something Clarke” Lexa continued and her voice going hard “When you plunged the knife into the heart of the boy you loved, did you not wish that it was mine?”

Marie could see Clarke paling at the commander’s words and she seemed lost for word.

Before the blonde could answer, a warrior called for the commander. He had found a small container in Raven’s coat.

Raven immediately claimed loudly, that it did not belong to her, but her denial fell on deaf ears.

The man handed the commander, the container as Raven continued “That’s not mine, he must have put it there when he searched me.”

Clarke only shook her head in clear disbelief, when Lexa’s face contorted in silent seething and she loudly declared “No Sky person leaves this room!”

The commander swept from the building with her long coat swooshing behind her and some warriors following their Heda immediately, blocking the way for the members of Skykru.

Marie still stood rooted to the spot, stunned at what had happened the last moments. Her mind had just caught up with the fact, that the commander said that no Sky person was to leave the room and her heart clenched at the realization that the commander had left her behind. With a hammering heart, she hoped that the commander had simply forgotten of her in the chaos of the moment, but when Indra swept from the room and told darkly Lincoln that he was one of Skykru now and Sierra left as the last of the grounders, the scout pushed her away from the door briskly, before she closed it snarling at her to stay where she belonged.

Marie stumbled away from the door and stood in front of the closed door with wide eyes, her breaths coming out in short erratic bursts. Lexa must know that she had nothing to do with this and she hoped that the commander would realize that she was still with the other Skykru. But to her utter dismay, no one came back to collect her in the next few minutes.

The others completely ignored her, most of them looked shell shocked and Marie somehow doubted, that any of them were behind the attack on Lexa. All of them appeared to be too shocked for their reactions to be faked in her opinion.

When Clarke asked Raven a few moments later, if she was behind it and said that the girl had wanted her to kill Lexa at Finn’s execution, Marie’s eyes widened further. So, Clarke had not had planned to kill Finn at all, but rather to kill Lexa.

But Raven’s reaction to the question seemed too honest as well, so Marie somehow doubted that the other girl was lying and that she truly had absolutely no idea, where the container had come from.

Clarke suddenly seemed to talk with the air in front of her, after Raven had slapped her.  Marie watched on with a frown, as Abby tried to calm Clarke down. Maybe the other girl had lost her mind due to all the stress?

It seemed to take forever before Marie heard footsteps outside of the door again. Marie had sat down next to the door, keeping her gaze locked outside, wishing Lexa to return for her and she internally wondered, what Anya would say, when she heard of what happened. But with a sinking feeling, Marie started to doubt if anyone would even come for her.

Marie listened on as the others argued about who might have wanted to kill Lexa besides them and the answer Lincoln gave frightened her deeply. She had already learned from Anya and Lexa, that the decision to make an alliance with Skykru, might not be reviewed well by their people, but hearing someone else saying that it might be a reason for a lot of people to want her dead, made the message sink in fully.

When the door finally opened again, it was Anya who entered, closely followed by Sierra. The dark-haired scout was obviously trying to discourage Anya from retrieving Marie, from what the girl caught from their conversation.

Marie held her breath in a mixture of desperate hope and anticipation, until the general offered her a hand to hoist her from the floor with what looked like regret flashing through her brown eyes. Marie could not help herself and shortly slung her arms around Anya in relief, feeling herself shuddering slightly. She had really started to fear, that she had somehow already lost her place with them. Anya gently touched her hair and bent down to whisper “It is alright. You are not to blame, ai Skaifaya”

Marie looked up at Anya with a teary smile and let go of Anya immediately, when the other woman winced slightly from the pain the brief contact had caused her.

Anya, the commander said that no Sky person leaves the room” Sierra repeated angrily, glaring at the general.

Anya turned to face the younger woman with her face set in a warning snarl “You know very well that Lexa did not mean her!”

“Come” Anya said to Marie and just walked by the younger woman with blazing eyes.

Sierra seemed to have recognized, that she had lost and closed the door again after they had left.

Abby had followed them to the door, to ask what was happening, but the scout just ignored her and stormed away from the door, passing Anya and Marie on her way out without another word.

Anya walked at a pretty slow pace, so Marie gathered the woman was still in a high level of pain. The girl scooted closer to Anya and whispered “What happened?” No one had told Skykru anything of what was transpiring and Marie had no idea just how long she had been inside the room with the others.

“Soon” Anya hushed back in a strained voice and led the girl to the healer’s hut.

The small hut was pretty crowded. Gustus was lying on one of the cots, looking as pale as a ghost and he was still vomiting obviously.

The commander, Indra and some warriors, Marie did not recognize stood scattered in the small room, while Nyko was still occupied with tending to Gustus.

Marie only glanced at the commander shortly, but remained standing next to Anya’s side. She could not help feeling slightly betrayed by Lexa, who truly seemed to have forgotten about her. “How is he?” Marie lowly asked Anya, looking over at Gustus now. The man still did not look any better in her opinion and she wondered if Nyko might not have a fitting antidote at all. If it truly had been one of Skykru to poison the drink, she thought it unlikely that the survivors on the earth would have the same substances at hand, as someone from the Ark had.

“It seems that he is improving” Anya answered curtly, while sitting down on one of the empty cots. The short way to the room where her second had been kept, had tired her out much more than she would like to admit.

Marie followed her and now that she was so close to the woman again, she leaned against one of her long legs.

Lexa had watched with a furrowed brow, as the girl had just looked at her once with a hurt expression and now kept on looking every other way, apparently ignoring her presence.

“Where were you?” Lexa asked in an inquiring tone, stepping up to them.

Marie had listened to the conversation between the other warriors and it sounded, as if Indra and the other warriors had already started planning to attack the Ark soon.

Marie had opened her mouth to retort something in an accusing voice, but Anya cut in quickly, sensing her charge’s anger “She was, where I thought she would be, when you said you expected her to be at my bedside, with the other Skykru, commander.”

Lexa seemed puzzled by that information for a moment, before brief annoyance flashed over her face.

“Sierra didn’t let me leave” Marie grumbled, crossing her arms over chest.

The commander growled something too low to understand under her breath, before she added “I will have you welcomed into Trikru at the next opportunity, so that such a misunderstanding won’t repeat itself, Marie”.

Marie nodded mutely, but Lexa could see in her grey eyes, that she had already lost some of the trust the girl had had in her irrevocably for now and it would certainly take her some time to regain said trust back. But she couldn’t apologize to the girl right now, with some of her generals in the same room. A commander did not have to apologize for anything ever. She had been drilled with that from early on. Apologizing meant admitting an error. And that was something she could not do openly. She would later talk to Marie, when they were alone as she did regret not having checked earlier where the girl was. It was her responsibility also to look after the girl and even more so in times of Anya’s absence and she felt that she had failed her already. She had simply truly thought that the child would have returned to Anya’s bedside, it had not even crossed her mind that her order could have been interpreted this literately.

Silence had settled over them a moment later, while they all watched Gustus.

His vomiting had visibly slowed and Nyko had given him another tea and they now waited if he would keep the liquid down.

“What kind of poison was it?” Marie asked after some time lowly.

Lexa answered the girl’s question calmly “It was made from the sap of a special tree. But they do not grow here.”

Marie furrowed her brow in thought. She had heard Raven claiming again to the others, that she was innocent and how should the girl have gotten the sap, if the tree did not even grow here at all? No one seemed to have come to the same conclusion, but as she made to speak up and tell the commander her thought, the door opened and Sierra came in and Gustus started to vomit again. Marie looked alarmed, when the vomit had turned red and the commander went over to Nyko again.

Gustus had been given something else a few moments later and they waited once again.

Sierra had followed the commander and after being reprimanded for having kept Marie in the room as well, to what Sierra did not even bait an eye, the woman reported that part of the army had arrived at the outskirt of TonDC.

The commander nodded and the generals apart from Anya, who was to stay and safe her strength, left the hut to meet up with the other warriors, starting to plan their possible attack on Skykru.

 

Chapter 44

Indra had returned to the hut again later, to fetch Nyko. Marie just listened shortly to what the dark-skinned woman told the healer and heard, that they would get Raven to start the punishment.

The girl had remained standing leaned up against Anya’s leg the whole time they had waited now and when the healer left and Gustus started vomiting again, Marie rushed over to help the man.

When Gustus stopped vomiting again a few minutes later, Marie kneeled down beside his coat “Are you feeling better?” the girl asked in soft voice, her eyes still showing her concern for the man.

The burly man looked at the girl with surprise flashing over his face, before he nodded in mute agreement.

“Do you want more tea?” Marie asked tentatively, but the man declined and thanked the girl for her concern.

Anya had in the meantime gotten to her feet again and said to Marie “Come, we are expected to be outside soon” her voice still sounded strained and laced with pain.

Marie nodded, she had already guessed that she would be required to witness Raven’s execution. Something was not adding up in Marie’s mind, about the whole incident. She somehow knew, that Raven truly had not tried to poison Lexa and she felt horrible at the thought of the older girl being killed although she was innocent.

Gustus had also heaved himself to his feet and followed them outside with slow steps. The man looked slightly pale still and his skin seemed clammy, but he kept himself tall and proud and did not seem to waver in his steps.

In the distance, Marie could see two warriors escorting Raven to a pole in the centre of TonDC.

The inhabitants of the village had already started to gather around the scene and were watching as Raven was stripped of her jacket and her hands tied above her head with a thick rope to the pole.

Right in front of the pole the commander, Indra and Sierra stood and watched the Sky girl being tied to the pole. While Lexa and Indra wore angry expression on their faces, Sierra seemed almost gleeful somehow.

 Marie furrowed her brow and when she looked at Sierra again, something clicked in her mind and she touched Anya’s hand to make her stop, needing to speak with her right at the moment.

Gustus directly moved past them, to step up next to Lexa and the commander looked visibly relieved to see her guard back on his own feed, nodding to the man in mute greeting.

Anya had turned around to her charge and asked “What is it?” she furrowed her brow, the execution would start at any moment now “If you think you can’t watch anymore, you can leave.”

Marie shook her head vehemently, as Lexa loudly proclaimed the alliance to die with Raven’s last breath. “It is not that” she quickly said and looked up at her mentor with intent eyes “She didn’t do it, Anya.”

The woman only looked at her sceptically, clearly not convinced like that, so Marie quickly added, before Anya could interrupt her “I think it was Sierra”.

 Anya looked alarmed for a second and let gaze quickly sweep over their surroundings, making sure no one had overheard them, as she quickly led Marie a few paces away with a hand on her shoulder, out of sight of the upcoming execution “You cannot go around blaming someone just like that. You could get framed for that” she addressed the girl in a firm tone.

“No…” Marie tried to reason with Anya, as the conversation she had overheard in the morning between Gustus and Sierra flashed up in her mind. She quickly told Anya about what she had overheard in the woods and watched, as doubt started to show in Anya’s brown eyes, but the woman still did not look convinced, so Marie added “And Sierra could have hidden the container in Raven’s jacket, when she pulled out the small knife. And she did not seem surprised at all, when Gustus suddenly started to cough. And I haven’t seen her worrying over his health at all, as if she knew that he would survive”. She had noticed the last part only now. Sierra had stood guard in front of the door where the members of Skykru had been contained, until Anya had come and collected her. She would have assumed that a daughter worrying for the survival of her father, would have accompanied him to the healer until she was sure, that he would recover.

Anya’s brows had furrowed and the woman looked to be deeply in thought, when the first shrill scream pierced the air, making the hairs on Marie’s arms stand up with a shudder.

Lexa had drawn the first blood and handed the dagger over to Indra, who immediately took the commander’s place.

Marie grew more urgent, she did not want an innocent to die after all. “Anya, please, I know she didn’t do it…” she said and even to her own ears, her voice sounded desperate now.

“We do not have any proof” Anya said regretfully “Sierra would hopefully not betray Lexa’s trust like that.” At least she hoped, that the woman would not be foolish enough to attempt something like that, although she had to give credit to her second’s train of thought, it did appear awfully staged.

“But we need to do something” Marie pleaded with Anya, looking up at her with big grey eyes.

But the woman shook her head “There is nothing we can do now. I am sorry, Marie.” She saw the girl’s shoulders sag in defeat, but she would not endanger Marie’s life for the Skykru girl. Even if she did believe in her second’s words, it would be her word against Sierra’s. There was the potential chance, that Marie would be put on the tree for protecting Skykru and framing Sierra a highly trusted scout, with trying to poison the commander.

Another scream sounded shrilly behind them and Anya put her hand on Marie’s shoulder, guiding them quickly back to the execution.

Marie could barely look at the scene in front of her, as she stopped next to Anya. They were now standing slightly behind the commander and the knife was given from Indra to another warrior, red blood was already glistening on the blade. At the other side, Marie could see the rest of Skykru.

Marcus held Bellamy back forcefully, who obviously wanted to interfere and Abby was calling for Clarke to come in a desperate tone, so that they could leave.

When the bloodied blade was handed in her direction, Anya took it and placed a shallow cut on Raven’s exposed arm handing the blade to another warrior, skipping her second altogether for now. No one commented on that, also Anya could see Sierra narrowing her eyes at the girl slightly.

Suddenly Clarke stormed from the room and loudly demanded from Nyko, who had talked to Lincoln, to be handed the bottle. The blonde stormed to the site of the execution and Lexa told the warriors to let her pass.

Marie could see the other’s blue eyes blazing with determination as she said “One of your people tried to kill you, Lexa, not one of mine.”

“You should have run” Indra blustered and stepped closer to Clarke, her grip on her sword tightening.

“I can prove it” Clarke countered and took the bottle from Nyko and drank a huge slug of the clear alcohol.

Marie could see Lexa’s green eyes widening slightly at the sight, as confusion flashed across them. When nothing seemed to happen to Clarke after a few moments and Gustus had started coughing almost immediately after ingesting the liquid, Lexa said through clenched teeth “Explain”.

“The poison wasn’t in the bottle” Clarke concluded “It was in the cup.”

Most of the others around her looked confused, only Sierra looked alarmed for a second, before she stepped up to the commander and lowly said “A trick, commander. Do not be fooled”.

Marie was even surer now, that it must have been Sierra, but Bellamy had come to another conclusion and was blaming Gustus now, who quiet obviously had searched Raven as well.

Marie had seen recognition flashing up in his dark eyes seconds before and wondered silently, if the man had caught up to what his daughter had done. The man had looked way too surprised, by the poison to have put it in the cup himself or the man would have needed to be a genius at acting.

“Gustus would never harm me” Lexa assured Bellamy with absolute conviction in her steely voice.

“You weren’t the target. The alliance was” Bellamy retorted resolutely.

The commander had turned around to Gustus, her eyes hard and it was clear, she had no idea what to think at the moment when she said “You’ve been accused, Gustus. Speak true.”

Marie could see the man struggle for words for a moment, but he finally settled on “This alliance would cost you your life, Heda.”

All of them looked slightly shocked by that admission, but Sierra seemed the most unsettled. Marie could see a conflict raging in her eyes and she was now absolutely sure, it had been her. The girl wondered, why Gustus obviously planned to take the blame for Sierra, as she was sure whoever had done it would take Raven’s place on the tree.

She turned slightly to Anya, as Lexa said in a carefully even voice “This treachery will cost you yours.”

Anya had her eyes hefted on Sierra now, as well but she did not interfere.

Put him on the tree” Lexa ordered through clenched teeth, in obvious anger.

When two warriors obediently grabbed for Gustus’ arms, Marie stepped up to Lexa and loudly said “It wasn’t Gustus. Sierra also searched Raven…”

The girl let her voice trail off and Lexa looked between Gustus and Sierra with widened eyes, anger now obvious in them.

Lexa’s features showed confusion, but to Marie’s utter relief the commander seemed to at least be willing to believe her word. The commander had sensed, that Gustus had not been telling the whole truth and she had silently wondered, who he tried to protect by taking the blame. She had silently begged the man in her head to speak the truth, as she had not wanted to have to execute him. As she turned to her old friend and looked into her dark eyes, she knew Marie’s words to be the truth with a sudden flash of pain in her chest. It all made sense now, how extremely hostile Sierra had been to Marie, why she had kept her with the other Skykru and had not rushed to the healer’s hut with her father. Simply because she had known, he would survive the poison. The commander had already wondered, how Raven might have gotten hold of this poison, but it would not have been a problem for Sierra.

“Why?” was the only thing Lexa wanted to know from Sierra, her anger had faded mostly and only left a hollow feeling behind.

The woman had her chin jutted out defiantly, as she shortly glared at Skykru, before her eyes got softer and she looked at Lexa “I could not have you get killed by the alliance.”

Marie could see the commander closing her eyes for a second, as if she were in pain, before her voice had turned monotonous again and she ordered Sierra to be taken to the tree.

The scout did not resist being stripped of her coat, her shirt and her weapons. She was tied to the pole in her trouser and the bindings covering her chest and nothing else.

Marie could see a variety of tattoos climbing up the woman’s sides and arms in intricate patterns.

Anya had quickly stepped up to her young charge and quickly explained something to her, the girl must have been unaware of. She herself had planned to wait for the first cut to accuse Sierra and give her time to admitting the truth herself, but Marie had beaten her to it and now had to face the consequences of doing so.

She spoke in quick serious words to the girl “Because you have identified the culprit, you are now given the honour to place the second cut after the commander, Marie.” She tried to convey in her voice that Marie could not possibly decline this tradition. She could see the girl’s grey eyes widening and her breathing picking up. Anya squeezed Marie’s shoulders and lowly added “You cannot decline. You do not have to cut deep, but you need to place your cut.”

Marie was biting her lips and slightly trembling at the prospect, but she nodded trying to calm down.

Lexa had received another dagger and placed a long cut above the other woman’s breastbone.

In contrast to Raven, who had started screaming with the first cut, Sierra did not make a single sound as her skin was sliced open.

As Anya had told her, Lexa handed the dagger to Marie now.

With shaking legs and an unsteady hand, nearly unable to meet the woman’s dark eyes, Marie made a rather short cut on her exposed stomach.

The woman only silently glared at her, but did not say anything.

Marie watched the small cut starting to bleed and she felt vomit rise in her throat, unsure of whom to give the dagger next and she turned back towards Anya with a helpless expression.

Gustus had already stepped up to the young girl and had taken the knife from her trembling fingers.

Looking up at the man, while she let go of the knife, Marie felt tears watering her eyes and she could barely breathe.

You should not have done that” Gustus said lowly to his daughter, regret clear in his voice.

Sierra slightly shook her head with a small smile on her lips, as she said “Keep her safe”. It was obvious she must have meant Lexa as Gustus nodded and cut his own daughter in the stomach as well.

Marie realized with a sinking heart that Gustus had been willing to die for his daughter and because of her, he now had to participate in her execution. Marie felt even sicker with the thought and stumbled back to Anya, almost blinded by her tears.

No one commented on Marie’s behaviour, but after Anya had placed her cut, the woman had enveloped her in her arms and let the girl take some strength from her presence.

Silently crying, Marie watched the execution pressed up against Anya’s body. The girl could see the silent struggle in Lexa’s green eyes, as she watched her friend bleed to death slowly.

The members of Skykru looked all slightly green in the face and it seemed that most of them just now realized what justice for the grounders really meant.

Gustus had not looked at her again, but he had his eyes only fixed on his dying daughter.

It seemed to take forever for the knife, to be handed to all inhabitants of TonDC once.

But when it was handed back to Lexa, the commander put the knife away and stepped up to the pole, expression blank and stoic.

Sierra’s upper body was littered with bleeding cuts and some had not just placed a cut, but rather stabbed the woman with the knife, leaving sluggishly bleeding puncture wounds behind. A hint of red blood was already glistening slightly on the woman’s lips and she had started moaning out loud some time ago, when a new wound had been made. She was obviously struggling to keep on breathing, but her pained eyes instantly connected with Lexa’s, when the commander stepped into her field of vision.

Marie watched, still crying as Lexa seemed to straighten herself and took a deep breath, when Sierra said with great effort “Be strong and stay alive, little Lexa”.

The commander took out one of her swords and said “Your fight is over” while pushing the blade into Sierra’s heart, watching the life leave her dark eyes.

When the woman’s head fell onto her chest, Marie let out a loud sob again, turning into Anya’s body and slinging her arms around her. Anya let the girl hug her for a few moments, even though it did hurt her wounds pretty much, but when Lexa left the place of the execution, closely followed by Gustus, Anya broke away from their hug and guided the girl to follow them.

Gustus had stayed outside of the commander’s tent, which had already been erected and guarded the entrance. When Marie saw the man standing there, she swallowed harshly and when she looked up to him, her eyes overflowed with tears again, she said weakly „I am sooo sorry…”.

But the man’s eyes only mirrored her grief, not showing any blame or anger. He squeezed her shoulders slightly and said in a grave voice “She had made her choice. I had just not recognized how serious, she was about this. You are not to blame in any of this.”

When something suddenly made a crashing sound in the tent, Anya pushed Marie inside quickly, while Gustus followed them.

Lexa stood in the middle of the tent in front of a table, she obviously had just overturned in anger. Her face was grief stricken and Marie was surprised to actually see tears on the older woman’s face as well.

Anya and Gustus seemed just as surprised as Marie was, because the girl was the first to take a silent step up to Lexa and simply hug the commander in silent solitude.

Anya could see Lexa stiffening in the sudden embrace and surprise flashed across her former second’s face momentarily. Before she looked down on the girl, that had wound her arms around her body tightly and just tightened her own arms around the smaller body in a silent answer. Lexa laid her chin on Marie’s head and closed her eyes for a second, before she picked up her head again and looked at Anya and Gustus.

There was only understanding in their eyes, as well as a silent promise of unwavering support and Lexa nodded to them in silent thanks, still hugging Marie tightly to herself.

 

 

Chapter 45

Marie had no idea for how long she stood together with Lexa, locked in a tight embrace. It had completely passed her attention, that Anya had sat down on one of the stools and Gustus had returned to his post outside of the tent.

Lexa pulled her arms tighter around the smaller body once more, before she let her arms go slack around the child finally. With gentle fingers, she wiped away the tear tracks from Marie’s cheeks and forced a slight smile onto her own face.

Marie could easily recognize that the smile was fake on the commander’s part, but even she knew that Lexa needed to pull herself back together, watching the death of a close friend like that could not be easy and she shuddered to imagine just how it must feel like.

Now that they had an alliance with Skykru, the planning for the war against Mount Weather was bound to begin soon.

“What happens now?” Marie asked, as the commander bent down to set the table right again, she had knocked over before. The girl quickly helped Lexa with picking up the things that now lay scattered on the floor all round the tent.

“Now we wait for all of the generals of Trikru to arrive” Lexa said while re-arranging maps, she had just picked up from the floor. The commander’s voice sounded steady, although Marie could still see a lingering sadness in her green eyes.

“What about Skykru?” Anya asked from her position on the stool “They cannot fight as we do, they even are not able to hunt. How are they supposed to help in this war?”

Lexa took out her sword and placed it on the table, quickly going to the side of the tent, where a basin with clean water and some rags were stored. She wetted a rag and started cleaning her sword of Sierra’s blood. It took her a moment to gather her thoughts and finally answer “They understand the Mountain Men and their defences better than we do, we will need their knowledge to win. But I still think, that some of us need to train them in our ways. You are right, they need to learn to provide for themselves and to fight for themselves without their guns. They will run out of bullets sooner or later.”

Anya nodded also with obvious reluctance “I hope you do not intend to send me to train them.” The woman felt deeply uncomfortable in the presence of Skykru and their guns. The memory of the gunshot still fresh in her mind.

Lexa shook her head “No, you are still recovering. And you will need all the time you can get to recover, before the actual battle.”

Anya seemed to let out a deep breath, she not been aware of holding at all and relieve washed over her features.

The commander had taken an empty sheet of parchment and a piece of dark charcoal and started to draw something.

Marie stayed standing beside the table and glanced over Lexa’s shoulder curiously, wondering what the woman was drawing. The girl could only see an intricate pattern of lines, which seemed to form the crown of a tree.

Lexa let the girl watch silently, not reacting to her obvious eagerness to discover, what it was that she was drawing. The commander needed something to take of her mind of what had happened today and introducing Marie to Trikru properly, was more pressing than ever. When the other generals arrived, the girl’s place must have been made clear, so that no other not so accidental misunderstanding could happen.

Anya also had no idea what Lexa was sketching on the parchment, but she had an idea when she got a glance of the parchment.

“Finished” Lexa said after some time and turned the sheet of parchment around for her to see “What do you think?” she asked.

Marie tilted her head slightly in thought, inspecting the drawing intently. The parchment showed a big tree without any leaves. The tree was surrounded on both sides by twelve stars on top of the tree’s branches, Lexa had also sketched her discontinuous eternity symbol and above that her headpiece into the branches. “It looks nice” the girl said uncertainly, clearly not having caught up to what the sketch should represent.

Anya had also stood up from her stool to get a closer look at the sketch, but she looked slightly alarmed to find the commander’s symbols included in the design “Don’t you think including the commander’s sacred symbols is a bit over the top?”

But Lexa just shook her head resolutely and explained “Marie is to be my second as well. And as the commander’s second I can grant her the honour to wear those symbols.”

Marie had caught up to what she had been presented with and her eyes got wide “This will be my tattoo?” she asked, surprise and awe flashing over her features.

“If you like it” Lexa said softly to her and watched the girl closely to assess her reaction.

“I love it” Marie was instantly delighted “The tree for Trikru” and Lexa nodded in agreement “and stars for Skykru?”

Lexa nodded again “Your origin will always stay in the stars. There are twelve stars for the twelve clans in the coalition. And this” she pointed to the eternity symbol “is the sacred symbol of the commanders. It will mark you as someone highly trusted by me.” Silently in her head, Lexa added that it would also offer additional protection to the girl and the commander who would come after her, would most likely honour the symbol as well, so that Marie would remain protected no matter what happened to herself.

Initiating the girl into Trikru, would also serve to rectify the mood in TonDC as most of the inhabitants had already taken a liking to the quite Sky girl. Trouble concerning Marie would probably brew again, when she met with the other generals or with Titus in Polis the latest. She could almost hear her flamekeeper’s angry tirade already.

“And where will it be made?” Marie asked trying to picture the motive somewhere on her body and being completely unable to do so.

“Here in the tent” Lexa answered easily, not having understood the question at all.

“No” Marie answered quickly, shaking her head with a frown “I meant, where it will be placed on my body.”

Anya snorted slightly, being better aquatinted with the girl’s way of thinking. She had directly understood what the girl had actually wanted to know.

“That depends on where you want it to be placed” Lexa answered, shooting Anya a look to silence her “You could have it placed on your upper arm, a leg, your back or even one of your sides.”

Marie looked down her body, as if to judge where it would look best and Anya really laughed, when the girl turned around herself once, while trying to look at her own back.

“If you get it on your back or sides it will probably be too big to be done in one go. But it is your first tattoo so it will probably be made in several sessions anyway” Lexa said evenly with the hint of amusement in her tone.

The girl suddenly looked smaller somehow and worried her bottom lip between her teeth “Will it hurt much?” she asked lowly.

“Well it is not exactly pain free” Lexa admitted fighting against a smile “But there are special creams or even a tea that you can get to numb at least some of the pain.”

“Are there any other rituals or something?” Marie wondered out loud. She truly looked forward to being integrated officially into Trikru.

Anya shook her head “Not for you. A child being integrated into a clan, works differently from petitioning to be integrated to another clan as an adult. If you were older, you would have been sent on a hunt of your own, to prove that you can provide for yourself and aid the clan, you want to join. But you are still a child and Lexa already proclaimed her intent to have you made a member of Trikru, so there is no need for you to prove anything now.”

Marie nodded with relief evident on her face. After what she had seen so far, Marie had envisioned the initiation to somehow involve a fight or something.

Gustus suddenly announced Indra’s arrival and the commander told him to let the general enter.

Indra strode into the tent and also shortly glanced at the parchment, but the general did not comment on it at all, she rather stated what she had come for “Our scouts report, that the generals from Ice Nation, Rock Line, Lake People and Blue Cliff are approaching fast. They should arrive at TonDC in the morning.”

Lexa nodded, she had already sent word to the clans days ago now and expected all of them to arrive in the next two days. She said “I want you and some of your warriors to accompany whoever wants to return to Skykru camp from them. Stay with your warriors and start training them in our ways to fight and hunt.”

Indra’s lips seemed to thin slightly, but the general nodded silently.

“You can tell their party of the plan yourself” Lexa added evenly.

The dark-skinned woman nodded again “Anything else?” she inquired, tone tightly controlled.

The commander shook her head and dismissed Indra again. She turned to Anya “Do you know, if Leilani is still in TonDC at the present time?”

The other woman nodded “I think I have seen her around. Should I get her?”

Lexa nodded and added “And ask her, to bring her equipment to start right away.”

Marie watched the exchange with interest unsure, if she should stay with Lexa or accompany Anya.

Lexa answered the girl’s silent question, by slightly pushing her towards Anya to go with her. Lexa wanted a few minutes of quite solitude for herself at the moment.

From the position of the sun, Marie judged it to be sometime about early afternoon. She was internally still thinking about where to have her tattoo placed. “Do you think I should get it done on my back?” Marie asked Anya on their way through TonDC and added “And who is Leilani?”

Anya chuckled at the girl slightly “It will probably look most impressive on your back, but it will be covered by your clothes most of the times. But you can get other tattoos later on in different places, if you want. And Leilani is well known for her talent in marking another’s skin.”

In the distance, they could see Indra talking to Marcus. The man nodded and went back to the other Skykru.

“When will they leave?” Marie asked. She hoped that the atmosphere in TonDC would get friendlier again, after the others had left.

Anya had watched the girl closely guessing her train of thoughts and she shook her head with a slight frown “Not all of them will leave, Marie. Clarke will be expected to be part of the war meetings. Our people will need time to adjust.”

Marie nodded with a thoughtful expression. With what had happened with Sierra, she doubted that it would be easy.

Leilani lived in a small cave on the outskirt of TonDC and the woman turned out to be much older than Marie would have guessed. Her skin was wrinkled from age and her hair had started to turn grey. But her brown eyes were still sharp, when they assessed Marie standing next to Anya.

Anya addressed the woman curtly “The commander asks for you to come and mark our new second.”

Leilani’s brown eyes were fixed onto Marie’s for long moments and the girl tried not to squirm under her intense stare. Suddenly the woman nodded with a smile and turned around to gather the things she would need. “I am sure she will do great for Trikru” the woman said, after she returned with a pouch under her arms.

Marie blinked silently, unsure of how to react to such a comment, but Anya just shook her head with a smile dancing in her eyes and shoved the girl back out of the cave in front of her.

Their way towards the commander’s tent was silent and short.

Lexa stood in front of the tent and it seemed as if she had just finished a speech as most of the inhabitants of TonDC stood gathered around the tent, their attention fixed on their leader.

When they saw Anya, Leilani and Marie approaching the tent, they cleared a path for them and Marie could see, that Skykru had also gathered, interested in what was happening.

The commander turned around and entered her tent again and they followed her inside, leaving the rest going back to what they had been doing previously.

Lexa showed Leilani the sketch, she had made for Marie and the woman nodded silently.

The old woman turned back to Marie and walked around the girl once “Her back would be most suited” she proclaimed thoughtfully.

The commander nodded and Marie was told to strip out of her clothes and to lie face down on the commander’s bed for now.

Anya and Lexa had both followed her into the sleeping part of the tent and Anya had sat down on Marie’s other side, while Lexa still stood next to Marie’s head. It was obvious to both of them, how exited and scared the girl was to get her tattoo and with that to really belong to Trikru from now on.

At the first prick of the needle, Marie shrieked slightly in surprise.

Leilani had not announced that she would start, so she had simply startled Marie.

Lexa had taken to sitting down next to the bed cross-legged, after she had rid herself of her shoulder guard and long coat. To calm the girl, she had taken hold of one of the child’s hands and she shrieked again, Lexa could see Anya taking Marie’s other hand.

After some time, Lexa softly asked “And how is the pain?”

Marie blinked her eyes owlishly, as if she had been only moments ago from falling asleep “It doesn’t really hurt.”

Lexa chuckled softly and squeezed the girl’s hand once.

Anya was leaning against a post of the tent, while still holding on to Marie’s hand and also seemed to be close to sleeping, so Lexa simply began to try to mediate. She had expected her focus to be off, while she still held the girl’s hand, but it did not take her long at all to settle her thoughts into the trance like state she wanted to achieve.

The tattoo took hours without end. Luckily, Marie still felt the sensation as not being really painful per se and she had truly even slept for some of the time. When she blinked her grey eyes open again some time later, she could feel Anya’s hand completely relaxed and a short glance out of the corner of her eyes told her, that the woman had also fallen asleep. She doubted though, that her half sitting position was very comfortable to sleep in.

Lexa had her eyes closed, but she sat with a straight back next to her bed, so Marie thought that the woman was probably awake. She softly squeezed the commander’s hand and instantly her green eyes snapped open again.

Leilani was humming a constant melody under her breath and Marie wondered, if the woman did not want to take a break.

“How far are we?” Marie asked in a low voice to Lexa.

The commander craned her neck and looked at the girl’s back shortly. She must have mediated longer than she thought. Most of her charge’s back was already decorated with dark ink now.

Leilani had started at the girl neck with her symbols and the stars and worked her way down the girl’s spine and was at the moment occupied with outlining the tree’s bark.

Lexa told her that it would not take much longer and most was done already and saw the girl’s eyes light up happily.

Leilani had also heard the question and shook her head slightly “I will still need some time” she denied the leader’s words.

Lexa nodded for her to continue.

Marie felt awake now and did not want to sleep again, but when Leilani moved to colour some of the tree’s bark directly over her spine, she winced in pain. It was really starting to hurt now. 

“Can you distract me somehow?” the girl asked, wincing again and her back straightened and as she tried to arch away from the needle.

Lexa squeezed her hand reassuringly and said “And what do you want to hear?”

Marie thought for a second “Can you tell me of your time before you became the commander?” she asked. She had wondered about the woman’s past before, but had not dared to ask.

Lexa nodded again and silently thought about what to tell her specifically “You already know, that I have started my training early on. Our children start training in fighting, when they pick up a weapon for the first time. I did that with three summers.”

“You have always been overly eager” Anya interjected in a sleepy voice, having woken up only a few seconds ago. 

Lexa chuckled softly at the memory and so, they passed time with speaking about Lexa’s childhood.

It had already turned completely dark by the time, Leilani finally stepped back with a satisfied nod and left them again only moments later, after gathering her things.

The skin on her whole back felt slightly irritated as Marie turned her head to catch a look at the new tattoo. She could see some branches of the tree even climb over her shoulder and the stars had been interwoven into them. But she could not see very much of the design without a mirror.

Lexa and Anya both seemed satisfied as well with the result and Anya left shortly to go to Nyko. She still needed her bandages to be changed and she wanted to get a balm for her second to help with the healing of the freshly tattooed skin.

Marie was feeling absolutely blissful right now. She finally belonged to Trikru. She had a place, where she belonged again.

“Thank you” Marie said softly to Lexa, eyes shining with deep emotions.

“For what?” the commander asked, slightly confused. It was normal to be marked at an initiation.

“For giving me a place to belong to” Marie added with a big smile and hugged the perplexed commander again.

 

Chapter 46

When Anya returned a few minutes later after having her bandage changed and gathering a balm to sooth Marie’s freshly marked skin, the woman walked into the tent to see Marie still hugging Lexa tightly. Anya remained where she was for a moment, just watching her former second and the younger one together. She was positively surprised that the commander had allowed the girl to obviously become a little closer to her. After what had happened with Costia, Lexa would not allow anyone close to her any longer. It seemed that Marie somehow was in the process of breaking through the iron walls Lexa had put around her heart in the last years. Their connection was loose and only growing, but it was obvious nonetheless.

Lexa had of course heard Anya enter the tent and her green eyes were now firmly fixed into Anya’s.

It made her chest tighten to see this expression in Lexa’s green eyes. She knew how much Sierra’s betrayal must have hurt the commander, her losing control afterwards in the privacy of her tent was testament to that, but she had also seen the concealed hurt flash through the same green eyes when Marie had openly just sought out her own presence and averted Lexa earlier. Obviously, they had both begun to care deeply for the young girl now, even though Anya still had a hard time to understand how that had happened.

 When she had agreed to take Marie as her second in TonDC, she had just felt the sudden need to somehow help the young girl. There was something in Marie which she had never seen in anyone until now and seemed that the same thing must be calling to Lexa as well. Although Anya knew that Lexa always had a rather soft spot for children and how much the younger nightblood children adored the commander.

For all of their sakes, Anya hoped that Marie would not hold a grudge towards Lexa, but somehow, she doubted that she would, at least not for long.

Silently, the woman wondered what would happen with Gustus now. He had been willing to die for his daughter. On a personal level she could understand this decision completely, but it also meant that Lexa would be a fool to continue trusting him blindly for now. She highly doubted that Gustus would make the same mistake again, to think that he knew better than the commander, but he had still disregarded her orders and thus undermined Lexa’s authority.

After a few moments of silently watching them both, she slightly cleared her throat to make the girl aware of her presence as well.

Marie let go of the commander with an almost sheepish expression and smiled at Anya, with her grey eyes shining happily.

 Anya held up the jar she had gotten from Nyko and said “Sit on the bed, so that I can apply the balm”.

Marie nodded and complied quickly with her directions. She had remained topless, so she could immediately sit down on the bed, facing her back towards Anya. She startled slightly when Anya's fingers made contact with her skin for the first time, as the balm was surprisingly cold.

“Sit still" Anya chided the girl lightly, pausing her movements until the girl visibly straightened and with gentle fingers, she applied the reddish balm which smelled strongly of honey and had a faint trace of marigold as well.

The girl hissed slightly at her touch and wiggled in discomfort, when she moved her fingers over her lightly swollen skin.

Anya had to give silent credit to the girl for having been still and patient during the actual marking process, she knew how much it could smart, if the tattoo rested over bones. 

The girl was relieved, when Anya finally closed the lid of the jar again after having finished with the skin on her back.

Lexa in the meantime had looked through a wooden chest and dug out a soft shirt for the girl to wear for the night. She knew how the girl’s skin must feel right now, so she needed something loose and soft for the night. It was one of her own undershirts and the commander stepped up to the bed, directing Marie to lift her arms over her head. She simply slipped the fabric over the girl’s head directing her arms into the short sleeves of the shirt and regarded the dark shirt with a frown on her face. The thing looked ridiculously large on their charge’s small frame. She internally wondered if she ever had been this small.

Her thoughts must have been written clearly on her face, as Anya seemed to have to battle to not start laughing out loud, a definite smirk tugging at the woman's lips.

Lexa narrowed her eyes at her former mentor with a slight pout on her lips. The shirt did look ridiculous on Marie after all.

Anya could not contain her laughter at the commander's antics, as it reminded her of the girl Lexa had been when they met. The girl had also been more of a runt, but what she had missed in physical size and strength, she had made up with sheer determination.

Marie looked between the both of them with confused grey eyes, not having caught up with the silent conversation between them.

Lexa huffed in annoyance at being laughed at like that by the woman, but she knew that her general did not mean any harm with it at the moment.

When Anya suddenly winced with obvious pain flashing over her features from the laughing, which had pulled at her healing wound, Lexa’s annoyance faded completely and was replaced with a feeling of gratitude. She had nearly lost Anya forever and she just now started to see again, how precious the woman really was to her. With a slight grimace, Lexa thought about returning to Polis after felling the Mountain and facing Titus again. She knew the man would not take kindly to her renewed relationship with Anya and he would probably have a fit, when he met Marie and recognized the significance the girl already carried for her.

But that was a conflict for another day, so she pushed such musings from her mind for now, they only had a few hours left, before the sun would rise again calling her back to her duty. The commander knew that Anya also dearly needed all the rest and time to heal, the woman could get if she was to ever regain her strength and the day had been exhausting to all of them. She felt completely drained, but she doubted that sleep would really help with the hollow feeling that had taken up residence inside her chest.

“We should rest before the sun rises again” Lexa finally said. She already wore comfier clothes fit to sleep in, so after Anya had nodded and stood up from the bed, the commander climbed into the bed and laid down slipping under her furs.

Marie was still sitting on the edge of the bed looking between the bed and her own furs with a frown on her face and indecisiveness flashing over her features. The girl absolutely hated sleeping on her stomach, but she doubted lying on her back would be a possibility for the night, the skin on her back already felt tight and painful without lying on it.

When Marie still had not moved a few moments later, Anya asked “What is wrong? Go to sleep, Marie.”

The girl looked at the woman with a pout on her features, which Anya did not see as she had not even opened her eyes.

Marie answered her in a slightly whiney tone “I can’t sleep on my stomach…”

Lexa could practically hear Anya rolling her eyes at the answer and before the other woman could tell the girl to just suck it up and go to sleep, Lexa motioned the girl over to herself, lifting her furs up invitingly for the girl to slip under. Lexa just lowly chuckled to herself, when the girl immediately snuggled up to her lying on her side, with her head cushioned on her chest. She softly let her finger glide through the girl's blonde hair a few times, while wondering how this position was any different from sleeping on her stomach on the furs.

But she had spent enough nights with the girl in exactly this position, to know that it indeed helped her charge sleep immensely even though the girl herself obviously had not caught up with that yet.

Feeling the girl’s smaller frame pressed against her, also helped herself now, feeling the hollowness within her chest mute slightly. When Lexa had slipped under the furs alone a few moments ago and had closed her eyes, she had immediately been confronted with Sierra’s dark eyes staring at her from the tree in her head. Her dark eyes accusing her darkly.

As the commander, Lexa had already executed many people through the years. But she had always been haunted by their faces in her sleep, no matter if she had known them personally or not. It had been worse, in the first year after her ascension. Nothing could have prepared her for the harsh reality of truly leading people, of carrying the responsibility over their lives on her shoulders on her own. Costia had been the only reprieve in those times. And when she had been killed and Lexa had been delivered her head, she had been unable to sleep at all. She had suffered from nightmares for days on end, Anya had stayed with her for those nights, holding her through her sorrows in silent solitude, before she had finally learned to close of her heart for good.

Lexa had felt a piece of herself dying back then, but it somehow started to come alive again now. Thankfully, the girl’s regular breathing grounded her thoughts in the presence somehow and allowed her to slip into a dreamless slumber quickly.

The girl had not moved an inch, when Lexa awoke long even before the sun started to rise again. Her body was completely programmed to rise early, as the hours before the sun rose, were mostly the only time through the day she had to herself. Her duties kept her occupied mostly long after the sun had already set again. Being away from Polis, gave her a little more leisure time, so there was no urgent need to rise this early now as well.

The arm on which Marie was still lying, was completely sensationless and cautiously Lexa tried to get her arm out under the girl’s body. But as soon as she started to move slightly, the girl just followed her movement snuggling up to her upper body again. With a silent huff, Lexa resigned herself to her fate for now. When they finally would rise later, her arm would still be fine after a few moments. Instead of falling back asleep, Lexa thought about what she needed to do over the course of the next days.

She already knew that planning the war against the Mountain would be straining. The involvement of Skykru was bound to cause unrest in her army. It had been difficult and strenuous enough before to get the generals of the different clans into order and she had the dark foreboding that it would be even worse now. She was sure that some of her generals would be testing her patience during the next days. With that line of thought, her mind strayed to the blonde Skykru leader.

Lexa wondered what on earth had made her tell the other woman about Costia. But in that moment, it somehow had felt to be the right thing to do. She had absolutely no idea, why her eyes seemed to look for the blonde woman whenever she was near.

She had to give Clarke some credit. The girl had not cowered beneath her at all. And she silently admired her stubborn will to get her friends out of the Mountain. She recognized the soul of a true leader in the blonde Sky girl, even though Clarke herself seemed completely unaware of her strength. She knew how much strength it must have cost Clarke to murder the boy she loved.

With that, her thoughts irrevocably returned back to Sierra. Lexa felt a pang of pain in her chest as she remembered her last words. “Little Lexa” only Sierra had ever called her by that nickname, Anya using it on rare occasions as well. She remembered fondly how they had met each other years ago shortly after Anya had begun training her as her second. Sierra had always been slightly bigger in their shared childhood years and she had liked to tease Lexa with that. And being young back then, she always successfully riled Lexa up with it.

Lexa also knew that she soon needed to make a decision concerning Gustus. Even though he had been innocent in the end, she had clearly seen in his eyes, that he might have done something similar, if Sierra had not beat him to it. She doubted that she would have to punish him publicly though. He had paid enough already with seeing and participating in his own daughter’s execution, even their own people would recognize that Gustus' loyalty had come at a high personal price. Mentally, Lexa was sorting through warriors she trusted enough to serve alongside Gustus in her personal guard. She could not let Gustus continue as her sole personal guard, until he had fully redeemed himself again. But she could also only appoint someone who truly held her trust without even the slightest hint of doubt. It would be disastrous if she appointed a guard who would maybe even be inclined to assist in an assassination attempt.

Lexa was interrupted in her thoughts, when Marie started to wiggle around still pressed to her upper body. One of the girl’s arms was bend behind her back and she seemed to be scratching at her skin underneath the lose shirt. But the girl’s eyes were still closed, so she did the scratching subconsciously.

Lexa gently shook the girl’s shoulder with her free hand to wake her. It would not be long now, before the sun rose, so they could finally get up now anyway.

Marie startled awake from her light touch instantly, but her scratching only increased with a pained groan and a grimace rested on her face.

Lexa extricated her numb arm from under Marie’s body and chastised her charge in a firm tone “Stop with the scratching. The skin must heal undisturbed or you can destroy some of the design.” She was satisfied with the way the tattoo had turned out and it would be a shame if it was damaged that way.

With great reluctance and still moving her shoulders around to get some friction from the shirt, Marie obliged her words, but a slight pout ghosted over the girl's lips in obvious discomfort.

Lexa was cautiously massaging her tingling arm with the other hand as blood flowed again freely through the limb.

“Sorry” Marie apologized looking slightly shamefaced.

Lexa just shushed the girl with a shake of her head and saw that Anya had also woken up and seemed to carefully stretch herself under her own furs. She watched the older woman from the corner of her eyes, searching for signs if her condition might have worsened again.

Lexa snatched the jar of ointment from a small table next to her bed and mutely motioned Marie to turn around and strip off the shirt. The balm should be able to sooth the girl’s irritated skin so that she would stop trying to scratch at it.

While turning around Marie looked into Anya’s brown eyes and warmly smiled at the woman mutely. Marie was relieved to note that Anya did not appear so exhausted any longer and colour seemed to slowly return to her complexion.

The girl flinched away from the commander's fingers, when she started to apply the balm and she noted that some patches of the girl’s back looked slightly inflamed. They would have to keep a close eyes on the healing process, before an infection would fester. It would be a disaster if the girl’s back caught an infection, too much of her skin would be affected to simply remove it.

Anya had stood up from her nest of furs and now stretched her hands up over her body, which promptly brought an agonized expression onto her face.

Lexa knew how impatient Anya was when it came to her own body and the time a wound needed to heal, but she would also keep an eye on the older woman to make sure she rested. When they would finally march against the Mountain, she wanted to know Anya to be next to her, so the general would need all the time left before the battle to get better.

Sounds from other inhabitants of TonDC were starting to filter through the tent and not much later Gustus announced Alira’s arrival, who brought in a heavy tray laden with food for all of them.

 

Chapter 47

Lexa had not finished with applying the balm to all of Marie’s freshly marked skin, when the tent flap was opened and Alira and Gustus stepped inside.

The commander could feel the girl’s frame tensing underneath her fingers, when she noticed Gustus’ arrival, but the man showed no reaction to Marie’s behaviour at all. She was not sure, why the girl was reacting this way at the moment. Lexa was certain that Gustus would not have done anything to Marie and yesterday the girl still had been openly worried for the burly man, so the girl’s apparent change of mind puzzled the commander greatly.

Alira quickly placed the tray with the food on a bigger table in the central part of the tent.

Lexa noted that the girl at least had obviously lost the shyness to show her body in front of others, as she didn’t try to cover her naked front from Alira’s and Gustus’ eyes at all.

Alira came over to Marie and crouched down in front of the bed, to be on the same eye level with the girl. The handmaid warmly smiled at the child and said “Welcome to Trikru, Marie” afterwards, she thrust out her forearm for the girl to grasp in the way warriors did to show respect to each other.

But Marie was still unfamiliar with the gesture and after thanking the woman for the welcome with an honest smile, she looked at her with her head tilted slightly in confusion, eyes flitting between the woman’s eyes and her still extended forearm and her smile froze as the seconds trickled by.

Anya snorted from the side in an attempt to conceal her laughter, when Marie finally just made to shake the other woman’s hand.

Marie looked even more confused now and let go of Alira’s hand, as if she had burnt herself through the touch, after glancing with a frown to Anya, she turned her gaze to Lexa with helpless eyes.

The commander also had her lips turned upwards in the hint of a smile, while she shook her head and stood up from the bed. She just took the girl’s arm in what a warrior clasp should have looked like and said “It is a sign of honour to clasp hands in that way” she explained to the girl in a calm and kind tone.

“Oh” Marie exclaimed, blushing slightly and returned her attention to the handmaid to now clasp her arm with Alira again, who had waited patiently until now. “I am still trying to learn” Marie stressed after she let go and looked at the woman with big honest eyes. She hoped that the woman was not affronted and Marie was certain that some others would have been, she immediately thought of Indra’s stern features.

Alira chuckled at the girl’s antics and nodded to her, before she stood up again “We all know” she agreed evenly.

Marie was surprised, when Gustus also crouched down next to her and offered her his arm in the same fashion and she looked up at the man with wide grey eyes, feeling herself tense in anticipation, although she was not certain what she was expecting.

Anya could see a deep sense of guilt flash over Marie’s face and the girl seemed to find it extremely difficult to look at Gustus.

Gustus himself did not show any outward reaction to the girl’s obvious uneasiness around him, he waited patiently, until the girl grasped onto his forearm and he nodded respectfully to her, looking down at the child with patient dark eyes.

Marie visibly squirmed under his gaze for a moment, before she averted her eyes to the furs and began to fiddle around with a few loose strands, not looking up any longer.

Lexa diffused the awkward tension only a moment later. She had used the few moments to dress herself again and she addressed Gustus in a sharp tone, clearly portraying her disappointment in the burly man “I want you to call Aleo to my tent. He will aid you in your guard position from now on.”

Gustus simply nodded silently in acknowledgment, although Lexa knew that the man had understood the order, for it really was. A sign that she did not trust him completely anymore, but he was too professional to react at the open jab. The man mutely left the tent a few moments later together with Alira.

Anya had watched the girl’s antics with a frown, wondering why the child was behaving so weirdly. She still kept her eyes on the girl during the short breakfast they shared. She noted that the girl had looked calmer again, the very moment Gustus had stepped out of the tent and out of her sight.

“What has gotten into you today?” Anya directly questioned the girl, when she remained silent all throughout breakfast.

Marie frowned at the question and defensiveness flashed through her grey eyes “Nothing” she retorted vehemently.

Anya thinned her lips, not convinced that the girl was actually telling the truth. From the corner of her eyes, she could see similar doubts within the commander’s eyes, who had obviously noted the girl’s change of behaviour as well. “You will better not by lying right now” she reprimanded their charge in a sharp tone.

Marie squirmed under the woman’s intense gaze, feeling the weight of the commander’s eyes on her in addition. She averted her eyes with a huff and crossed her arms over her chest defensively “I can’t stop to think about the execution…” she admitted. While her words had not been an outright lie, they also had not been the whole truth either. She was afraid that Gustus would recognize that she was in fact the one responsible for his daughter having been executed at all, had she not said anything, it would have been Raven to die and if she had not spoken up beyond that, Gustus himself would have died.

Although Anya sensed that there was more to it, than Marie had just admitted, her features softened slightly. She had lost count of all the executions she had seen or participated in over the years and she knew for a fact, that it would not be different for Lexa. Both of them needed to remember, that Marie was still new to quiet a lot of aspects of their culture and she could fathom how disturbing such a display of violence must have been for their charge.

Lexa had watched the girl in silence until now, she squeezed the girl’s shoulder gently in silent reassurance, mindful of the freshly marked skin. She did not voice out loud, that their charge would undoubtedly get used to the sight with time; the child would realize that on her own.

Marie looked up at the commander with a fleeting smile and she nodded in acknowledgement. She was relieved, when they left the tent together only short moments later. She was certain that she would have soon admitted her thoughts about Gustus otherwise and somehow, she did not wish for both women to know them.

She was slightly speechless to see, that some of the inhabitants of TonDC had already been waiting outside of the commander’s tent, but the people had in fact not waited for their commander, but rather to officially welcome her into Trikru as well, just like Alira and Gustus had already done.

The girl was internally grateful that the embarrassing moment had happened inside of the commander’s tent and not outside for all of them to see. At least she now knew, how to answer their welcome correctly without offending anyone or deflecting badly on Lexa and Anya.

Both Anya and Lexa noted with internal satisfaction, that most of the people seemed sincere in their welcome to their second into Trikru. But they really needed to think about all the small things the girl needed to learn quickly to be able to better blend in with their culture. Her education would really need to contain more than survival, fighting and language skills. It would be complicated to consider everything, they considered as normal as breathing.

On the outskirt of TonDC, Skykru had erected small tents for themselves. Clarke and Abby had been conversing with each other in front of them, when the people started to gather in front of the commander’s tent.

Through the crowd, Lexa could see both Clarke and Abby watching the proceedings with interest. But while Clarke seemed only genuinely interested, Abby looked alarmed at the gathering.

It was obvious that the people of TonDC kept clear of the small place the Skykru occupied in their village now and the atmosphere in TonDC all in all was rather tense.

The last one who welcomed Marie into Trikru was a warrior who looked to be around Lexa’s age and turned out to be Aleo. The man was tan and a lot thinner than Gustus, but Marie could see his athletic built through his light armour. He had dark brown hair and warm eyes and seemed completely unbiased towards Marie, for which the girl was silently grateful. She wondered fleetingly how everything might have played out, if Sierra had been more like this warrior. Aleo had a charming light smile on his face, when he clasped arms with Marie and she immediately took a linking to him. It was rare for any of the warriors to smile so freely and she could see Gustus grimacing at the other man's antics from the corner of her eyes.

Marie stood a bit taller when all of the people had officially welcomed her and Anya watched on with a pleased glint in her eyes. The girl really looked to be one of them now. Her light hair was braided in the style, Lexa had worn when she had been young and the dark green coat made a stark contrast to her fair hair, skin and eyes. Some traces of the tattoo peeked out under the girl’s collar and she seemed to have a certain glow of happiness around her at the moment.

Even Indra seemed mildly impressed with the confident image their second now projected, but the atmosphere got tense abruptly when Lincoln followed by Octavia came over to also offer his welcome.

Indra’s lips thinned angrily, but the general remained silent, when Lexa let the man come to them and only nodded in silent acknowledgment to him.

Anya noted with slight interest how the girl who had followed Lincoln seemed to be the slightest bit envious of Marie to be accepted into Trikru now.

Indra had already told Skykru that some of them would accompany them back to the Ark, to teach them their way of hunting and fighting.

Marcus had also watched the proceedings with interest and stopped Abby from interfering.

With a hint of annoyance Lexa noted, that Abby obviously was still not satisfied with Marie now officially being integrated in Trikru, but that was solely the other woman’s problem.

After the crowd had diffused somewhat, Clarke approached the commander with a determined expression on her face.

Gustus made to step in front of Lexa protectively, but the commander waved him off. After the events of the previous day, Skykru would be highly dumb to try anything against her in one of her own villages.

Marie saw Raven limping behind Clarke, trying hard to keep up with the other’s quick stride. She also spotted a radio in her hands and wondered what was going on.

“We have news from the Mountain” Clarke began urgently “We received this yesterday, but you were not to be disturbed” a hint of annoyance was laced into her tone.

Lexa furrowed her brow slightly, as she had not given Gustus orders to keep everyone out, instead of showing that openly, she asked “What is it then?”

Clarke nodded to Raven who pushed a button on the radio and the radio emanated a voice “Forty seven of us are trapped inside Mount Weather. We don’t know how much time we have left. Please hurry. This is Jasper Jordan. We need help.”

The message started to repeat itself, so Raven let go of the button she had pressed.

The grounders looked at the radio with puzzlement obvious on their faces, some of them looked even alarmed. None of them had ever seen a radio in use and they were completely unfamiliar with how they worked.

The commander and Anya shared a silent glance when Clarke continued “Bellamy and Lincoln will depart shortly. We need an inside man to lower their defences. Lincoln can get Bellamy in undetected.” The blonde young woman had spoken with conviction in her voice and met Lexa’s piercing gaze steadily.

The commander was slightly put off that such a decision had been made without her, but Clarke was a leader in her own right or at least she was growing to become one.

Markus and Abby had also approached the group and Marcus told Indra that they were ready to leave.

The dark-skinned general nodded in silent acknowledgment and turned to gather her own warriors who would accompany her to the Skykru’s camp.

Abby spoke up next, obviously trying to deter Clarke from her plan “Clarke, you can’t sent Bellamy to his death. There has to be another way.”

Clarke’s eyes hardened, when she answered her mother in a clipped tone “What good does an army when it cannot reach the enemy. Bellamy needs to turn off the acid fog before the commander’s army can attack.”

Lexa had to admit that Clarke’s arguments were right, but she highly doubted one spy inside the Mountain would be enough. But she would not tell her this in front of Abby. So instead she just nodded and watched Abby huff in increasing annoyance. Her green eyes turned to Bellamy who had also approached them.

He immediately assured “I will do it, chancellor. It is worth the risk.” At least he seemed intent on his mission.

Anya was wondering silently how Lincoln planned to get Bellamy into the Mountain undetected, but she hoped they had a sound plan.

“Who will stay in TonDC beside you?” Lexa asked turned to Clarke.

“She will not stay” Abby interrupted rudely looking at her daughter.

“I will, mom” Clarke said resolutely “You will not.”

Abby opened her mouth to retort something, but Clarke continued “You are the chancellor and a doctor. You are needed at the Ark. I need to do this.”

The older blonde woman conceded but added “But Major Byrne will stay here with you.”

Clarke seemed to roll her eyes in defiance,  but nodded silently.

By the time it had took them to discuss, Indra had finished gathering her men and returned to them “We are set to leave”. Marcus nodded and Skykru left.

Clarke had stepped away a few meters and was quietly talking with Bellamy while Lincoln said his goodbyes to Octavia kissing the girl passionately.

They watched the Skykru group leave, before the Trikru warriors with Indra did. The people of TonDC seemed to breathe more easily after they had left.

“When will the war council start?” Clarke asked after having been assigned a place to sleep with Major Byrne.

“Later” Lexa answered “When the other generals have arrived. We will train in the meantime” The commander had added towards Marie.

Marie nodded eagerly immediately. Training was much more interesting in her opinion than having to listen to endless reports.

Clarke had asked if she could watch the training, interested in how the grounders instructed their children. She had not anticipated for the commander to train Marie personally, so she was slightly surprised when Lexa agrees to her request and motioned her towards a free field. 

The commander had decided to train Marie herself today. Anya was still healing after all and should not needlessly exert herself.

So, the woman begrudgingly stood next to Clarke on the side of the training pits. The initiation seemed to have really boosted Marie’s self-confidence and the girl exerted herself completely in training. Lexa still did not want to move her to a real sword though, so they trained with wooden staffs again.

The girl’s movements were getting quicker and she was much more agile on her feet and her reflexes had improved as well. Lexa still had to hold back of course it would probably take Marie a few weeks if not month to match up to her.

Clarke was surprised to see how well Marie seemed to do in the training. The girl’s movements seemed controlled and precise already. “She seems to do fine already” Clarke commented to Anya after a few minutes of silent watch.

The general looked over to the blonde girl shortly and nodded with an unreadable expression “She is trained by the best after all.”

Clarke obviously had no idea what to answer to that statement, so silence settled between them once again.

But Anya could see that the younger woman clearly still wanted to tell her something. She did not have any intention to engage in a friendly conversation with her, so she waited in resolute silence and watched Marie train with Lexa.

It took Clarke a few moments before she started again, lowly so that only they would be able to understand the words “I am truly sorry for leaving you behind, Anya. I know that I would not have escaped without your help. And I am honestly relived to see that you are doing better.”

The girl’s blue eyes portrayed her honesty and Anya simply nodded in acknowledgement for now. She had not expected Clarke to speak to her about the Mountain at all. What was done, was done.

Clarke must have interpreted her silence differently, because she added “I truly had no idea you had survived being shot. And I have asked Octavia to look at the drop ship if your coat is still there or not.”

Anya looked at the other girl, obviously surprised now “That is very ….” She paused “… considerate of you. I appreciate that.”

Clarke looked slightly pleased, but focused her attention back to Lexa and Marie still sparring with each other, while silence settled between them once more, but now it felt more companiable.

 

Chapter 48

Marie felt Lexa’s staff connect with her jaw painfully and she stumbled back from the woman.

Lexa only gave the girl a little moment before she charged at her again. She was satisfied with Marie’s efforts so far, the girl was catching on quickly enough when she used a series of attacks, memorizing them and starting to defend herself accordingly.

She only stopped their training, when scouts came to the training pit, telling the commander that the other generals would arrive in the next hour.

Marie was thankful for the reprieve as Lexa had started to really test her limits in the last hour or so. The girl had a split lip and her arms had begun to feel strained and heavy. She was completely out of breath and felt ready to collapse, she knew that she would not have been able to continue for long, before truly collapsing. She frowned slightly, when she noticed that the commander still looked completely calm and not strained in the slightest.

Lexa took the staff from Marie’s hand and once squeezed her shoulder gently and told the girl with a pleased shine to her eyes “You did well. You are improving fast now.”

Marie beamed with the compliment and smiled widely at Lexa, even shortly glancing at Anya proudly. The older woman still stood next to Clarke and nodded to Marie in acknowledgment with a faint smile on her features.

“Go and wash up” Lexa told her charge “You will sit in on the war meetings. You need to learn strategical thinking as well.”

Marie immediately nodded and hurried back to their tent, where she knew a bucket with clean water would already be waiting for her. She did not really know of what to expect from the impending meeting, she hoped that such a meeting would be more interesting than the commander simply listening to one report after the other, delegating one thing after the other.

Lexa told Clarke that they would begin the war council immediately as soon as the other generals arrived in TonDC and the blonde excused herself to fresh up and eat something.

Gustus and Aleo silently followed the commander from the training pits with Anya in tow.

The general wanted to get her bandages changed again, before they would start as well, so another second was sent to summon the healer to the commander’s tent.

Marie was still in the commander’s tent, cooling her split lip with a wetted cloth, when the others entered. She smiled at the general, when she saw her and watched from the corner of her eyes how Nyko began to inspect the wound on Anya’s body. 

“Some of the others might question your choice to keep me close” Anya cautioned in a strained tone, while Nyko untied the bandage around her midriff.

Lexa nodded with a slightly bored expression “Let them”. She would not let herself be influenced by the other general, although she knew her former mentor to be correct. Not everyone would be pleased about Anya’s return to her side.

“I still have failed you, Lexa” Anya retorted, a tad bit agitated now.

Lexa shook her head with a slight frown on her face “There is always the possibility to lose a battle. You did not fail me, you returned to my side after all.”

There was conviction in Lexa’s green eyes, so Anya chose to let the matter rest, although she still worried about the reception she would get from the other generals. She knew that not all of them would be as welcoming to her as the people of TonDC had been.

Marie listened to their conversation with a frown. She was relieved that the woman had returned and she did not understand why the other general would be angry about her survival.

Lexa was called away to meet the first general only a short moment later.

Marie waited until Nyko had left, to step closer to Anya and she looked at the woman with compassionate eyes. “I am glad you are alive” she said honestly, with a little shy smile.

Anya looked down at the girl with slight surprise flashing over her features, she would not admit it out loud, but she was touched by the child’s words. She squeezed the girl’s shoulders once in silent acknowledgement, before she gave her a slight nudge towards the exit of the tent. They would need to be there before the meeting began.

Anya straightened herself, taking one deep breath and schooling her features, before she guided Marie inside.

All eyes immediately turned to them, but Anya quickly recognized that the generals barely paid her any mind, instead focusing on their charge.

Quint was the one to react most viciously and a snarl set on his face, disdain evident on his face when he saw the blonde girl.

Marie had looked up at the burly man with a startled expression and stopped abruptly in her tracks, Anya nearly bumping into the child.

Lexa glared in warning at Quint and put a hand on Marie’s shoulder protectively, while she let her gaze travel over her assembled generals. After a moment of tense silence, the commander said clearly “Most of you have not met Anya’s and my new second. It is true, Marie is born of Skykru. But she is now marked as one of us and as the commander’s second” with that, she slightly turned Marie around which elicited a confused glance from Marie and brushed the girl’s long hair to the side, revealing her neck. Just above the collar of her coat, the tattoo ended with a few branches of the tree visible in which the commander’s holy sign was intertwined.

The generals all looked at the visible mark with unconcealed astonishment, but Quint deflated visibly and nodded mutely, now staring silently at the large table between them.

Lexa gently pushed Marie to stand beside Anya and they now only waited for Clarke’s arrival, before they would start.

In the meantime, Lexa reported to her generals that they now had a truce with Skykru and that they would attack the Mountain together.

Some of the generals reacted with obvious unease to that piece of news.

Anya could even understand their reluctance to some extent but she also understood that they needed Skykru’s knowledge of technology to match up to the Mountain Men. She did not know how high their chances of a victory were, if they fought as one, but they would need their combined forces.

Clarke it seemed had been productive in the last hour. When she came into the room, followed by Major Byrne who had a hand on a Skykru weapon, Clarke had some parchment in her arms. She opened out the parchment to reveal maps of the Mountain, she had hastily drawn on the parchment.

Lexa looked mildly impressed at the images. Apart from the little information Anya had provided on the outline of the Mountain, they had absolutely no idea how the interior of the Mountain was designed.

Clarke seemed to know much more of that as it seemed. The maps clearly outlined the different levels of the Mountain, the functions the levels had and the entrances and exits Clarke had heard about. Some part of the maps was greyed out for spaces where Clarke could not remember, what was supposed to be inside.

Although Clarke tried to completely ignore the glares that most of the generals were sending her, her tenseness was obvious.

Anya watched as Quint now focused his resentment solely on the blonde Skykru leader. She knew that Quint’s brother had been with her, when Clarke had burnt all the warriors outside of their metal ship.

Lexa completely ignored the man’s anger as well and instead asked Clarke to tell them, what they knew of the Mountain Men for sure by now.

Clarke retold what she had already told Lexa a few days ago “I have escaped the Mountain together with Anya. Hundreds of your people are trapped in there in cages. Their blood is being used as medicine to heal the Mountain Men of radiation poisoning. My people are prisoners there, too, as we now know for sure.”

The commander nodded to Clarke and said “The goal is clear. Fell the Mountain once and for all!”

The generals scattered around the room nodded in agreement and the anticipation was almost palpable in the room.

Anya knew they would even be willing to work with Skykru, if that meant eliminating the Mountain Men for good. The Mountain had cast a shadow over them for too long now.

However, it became clear pretty quickly that getting into the Mountain; was the main problem. Most of the generals were sure that their size of the army would be force enough to siege the Mountain.

They argued back and forth for what felt like hours. Anya was finding it increasingly harder to remain standing straight as the time passed with no mutual consent so far. She could also see Lexa’s patience waning out the tightening of her jaw a dead give-away to those who knew the woman better.

It was Quint who finally lost his patience and roared “This argument is a waste of time! It is simple. If they can’t breathe our air, why not just open the door and be done with it? Let them burn!”

Marie looked at the man with an unconvinced expression in her grey eyes. If opening the door would be easy, they would have surely won against the Mountain in the past already.

The generals on the other hand seemed to like that idea and approval resonated through the room.

“No, because they have a containment system, multiple airlocks just like we had on the Ark” Clarke argued against Quint’s point “Our inside man can get that down.”

“If he gets inside” Quint retorted scornfully and crossed his arms over his chest.

Lexa had let them argue among themselves for now only listening but now she intervened “What if we shut it down from the outside? You say the dam gives them power. Let’s take that away.”

“That dam withstood a nuclear war, commander. I highly doubt…” Clarke said, but was interrupted by Quint smashing his fists onto the table angrily.

Marie jumped slightly next to Anya startled at the sudden loud noise and alarm flashed over her features. She wondered if war meeting always looked like this.

“All she offers is “no”” Quint seethed to Lexa, his eyes blazing angrily.

“Quint…” Lexa cautioned the general with a silent warning and glared at the impatient warrior.

“Apologies, commander. But the biggest army we’ve ever had waits for us to give it a mission. The longer that takes, the more of our people die inside that Mountain” Quint said trying to control his emotions.

Clarke’s comment didn’t help with that when she said “It’s the same for all of us.”

“We’ve lost thousands” Quint snarled at Clarke turning to her “How many have you lost, girl?” He stared at Clarke for a moment before he continued “She says, she has a plan. I say waiting for one man to get inside is not a very good one.” He shook his head at the last part to emphasise his point.

A younger general directly agreed with him “I agree with Quint. We have an army. Let’s use it.”

“We will after Bellamy lowers their defences, turns off the acid fog” Clarke interjected her voice increasing in volume “I don’t care how many men you have. If you can’t get to your enemy, you can’t win.” She glared at the both of them heatedly.

“You are the enemy” Quint had obviously finally reached the end of his patience and his eyes blazed dangerously.

Anya felt Marie stepping even closer to her and saw Major Byrne stepping closer to Clarke, when the blonde had turned to face the incensed warrior.

“I am sorry. Have I done something to offend you?” she asked the man her eyes unyielding.

Lexa seemed to take even breath to calm herself slightly as the situation threatened to get out of hand.

“Yes” Quint answered in a deadly serious voice “You burnt my brother alive in a ring of fire.”

Anya could see Clarke falter for a second, before she straightened again and fully faced Quint standing nearly nose to nose with the man “He shouldn’t have attacked my ship.”

“You’re very brave under the commander’s protection, aren’t you?” Quint seethed at Clarke with glinting eyes.

“Enough” Lexa finally interjected to diffuse the situation before Quint would really attack Clarke.

“I can’t be in an alliance with these people” Quint proclaimed while turning away from Clarke with his lips pressed together and started to walk away from the table. He had not been given the permission to leave the gathering so he would stay until it was called to an end.

“Quint’s right” Lexa finally said towards Clarke “Waiting for Bellamy is not a plan. It is a prayer. One not likely to be answered.”

Clarke seemed to have to hold back a retort and settled on “Excuse me. I need some air”.

Anya watched the blonde leader leave the room closely followed by Major Byrne, while Quint looked at least slightly satisfied for now.

Lexa intently studied the maps on the table to search for something they had not thought of until now.

“Come” Anya said to Marie. She also needed to get away for now. She could barely conceal the pain in her midriff anymore and needed to be away from the other generals for now.

Marie silently followed Anya out of the building and watched as Clarke went to enter the woods at the outskirt of TonDC. She had stopped to talk with Major Byrne and the woman let her go on her own for now obviously.

Anya had led Marie to Nyko’s hut to ask the healer for a tea against the constant pain.

The man quickly threw together some herbs and Anya drank the foul-tasting liquid keeping a completely straight face. After a few moments Anya straightened herself up again and led Marie back to the fighting pits, she needed to vent off at least some frustration. On the way to the fighting pits, Marie saw Quint also leave TonDC in the same direction Clarke had gone only a few minutes ago.

She highly doubted that fighting was something Anya should be doing right now, she still could see the woman lying on the commander’s bed, still and pale; and she worried that Anya might hurt herself again, but when she had cautiously tried to voice her opinion, Anya had just pursed her lips and handed her a staff.

Reluctantly, Marie did spar with Anya a few moments later. She had not expected Anya to be this strong again and the girl lay coughing on the ground, only a second later trying to get air back into her burning lungs from the sudden impact.

Anya just silently waited for Marie to get back up and fixed her with a stare, that clearly told Marie that Anya really wanted her to try beating her, so she did.

After only a few minutes, Marie regretted her struggle though, as she had truly managed to hit Anya. Her staff had connected with a thumping noise with Anya’s midriff and the woman hissed in apparent pain. Out of shock, Marie actually let go of her staff and looked at Anya with huge worried eyes.

Anya cautiously touched the bandage under her shirt and cursed under her breath, when her fingers came back slightly coated in fresh blood. She must have pulled some stiches.

Marie looked close to burst into tears, when Lexa suddenly appeared behind them.

The commander had seen them spar and Marie getting a hit into Anya. With worry, she noted the blood on Anya’s fingers, so she turned to Gustus “Bring her to Nyko” she ordered in a vehement tone.

When Anya made to open her mouth, to retort something angrily, Lexa only glared at her and the woman shut her mouth again.

Marie looked completely lost and her lips were quivering slightly, as she stared at Anya’s bloodied fingers. She had not meant to hurt the woman and she was afraid that tearing the stitches would worsen her condition again.

Lexa held the girl back, when she made to follow Gustus and Anya to Nyko’s hut. She had expected Clarke to be somewhere near and she wanted to continue the war council, but she had not seen Clarke anywhere. “Have you seen Clarke anywhere?” she asked the girl calmly.

Marie’s eyes snapped to her, as she had watched Anya’s retreat before and told the commander that Clarke had went into the woods and pointed the direction, as an after-thought the girl added “Quint also went there later”.

Lexa seemed to grind her teeth together in anger, fearing to know already what might have happened “Come, we will search for Clarke and Quint.” The commander nodded to Aleo, who silently followed them, leaving TonDC behind them.

 

Chapter 49

Lexa seemed to sense that something wasn’t right, when both Clarke and Quint were nowhere to be found in TonDC, so she hurried them through the woods even faster.

Marie soon had to run to keep up with Lexa’s fast strides and she wondered what the commander was expecting to find anyway. She had begun to appreciate the untamed forests around the Trikru villages over the last days, but now she had difficulties to keep up with the woman, without falling over roots or stumbling through the holes in the uneven ground.

Lexa felt a strange kind of foreboding as she hurried her charge through the woods, keeping track of the girl from the corner of her eyes, ready to reach out and catch the girl before she would tumble down truly. Anya and she would need to work on the girl’s ability to navigate through the underbrush at a faster pace. Fortunately, it did not take until she caught the sound of a struggle not too far ahead.

As they hurried closer, Marie just saw Quint attacking Clarke, throwing himself onto her body.

In lightning speed, Lexa had pulled out one of her daggers and took aim for a second.

Marie watched Quint closing in for the kill, towering over Clarke with his sword drawn and how Lexa threw her dagger. She shortly admired the great precision Lexa obviously had with the dagger, as the blade imbedded itself only moments later in Quint’s outstretched arm perfectly, making the man turn with widened eyes to his attacker, hand clutched over the dagger.

Aleo had also drawn his sword as he quickly stalked over to the warrior on his knees.

They now surrounded Quint who held his wounded arm in front of his body protectively, eyes widened at his leader.

Lexa just bent down and quickly pulled her dagger out of his arm, unmindful of the man’s reaction, which made Quint groan in great pain, clutching at his bleeding wound more tightly.

“Attack her and you attack me” Lexa said to the man in a deadly serious tone, towering above him threateningly.

Aleo stepped closer to his comrade, aiming his sword for the man’s throat, daring him to get back on his feet, ready to strike him down, should he be foolish enough to try.

“Thank you” Clarke said a little breathless and clearly shaken, blue eyes slightly widened, after getting up from the ground and she now had a pistol trained on Quint as well, probably afraid that the warrior would make another lunge for her.

“Where is your guard?” Lexa asked Clarke with annoyance in her voice and her eyes, on their way they had not encountered anyone else, so the blonde must have left alone. It was irresponsible for a leader to leave a camp unsupervised. Even she as the commander, rarely left without guards at her side.

“He killed her” Clarke answered instantly, looking at Quint accusingly.

Marie could not put a finger on it, but the older girl’s words had somehow sounded false, uttered after a short beat of silence, as if she had to think of an answer beforehand.

“She lies” Quint said strongly through clenched teeth, still lying on the ground between them and as he turned to the commander, he added “My fight is only with her” conviction in his dark eyes.

“Your fight is over” Lexa deadpanned seriously, face stony and not betraying a single emotion. She had made it absolutely clear, that Skykru were not to be harmed and attacking another clan’s leader, was always a serious crime. She could not react lax to Quint’s transgression, or the impression would arise on the other generals that her protection did not mean anything, which could certainly put her second in danger as well.

Marie could see Quint’s eyes widening slightly in realization, as if the man truly had not anticipated the outcome of his doings at all or at least had been convinced that he would lot loose his own life as a consequence.

“The kill is yours Clarke” Lexa said to the blonde woman in a calm tone, as she put her dagger back into the holster on her thigh again, now that the threat was handled, waiting expectantly for the other leader to claim her kill. To her internal consternation, she could easily spot the blonde woman hesitating.

Marie could see Clarke swallowing uncomfortably and the fingers holding her pistol, were visibly shaking.

Lexa was gauging Clarke’s reaction and noted her reluctance to kill Quint with silent disdain, leading people always meant having to make hard choices. She wondered if she might have misjudged the other leader, she had even been slightly impressed by the way the blonde had barged into her tent and proposed the alliance, she had not faltered there.

The situation abruptly changed, when a loud roar resonated through the woods, still a slight distance away.

Marie looked to Lexa in confusion, who had whirled around to the direction where the roar had come from immediately. “What was that?” Marie asked, slightly worried. She had a distinct idea what it might have been, but she hoped to be wrong.  She had never seen an animal which was able to roar so loudly.

“Pauna” Lexa almost whispered, fear visibly flashing through her green eyes. The commander barely needed a second, before she took out one of her swords from her back and slashed into the back of Quint’s legs.

The warrior fell to the ground with a surprised scream, his eyes widened in obvious horror.

Lexa quickly shouted at them to run, urging them to get moving in a desperate tone.

Marie sensed immediately, that this was a threat even the commander was mindful off, she had never before seen fear in the commander’s eyes and it worried her greatly to see it now; she hoped that they would be even able to outrun the beast. Anya had mockingly told her that she moved as loudly as this particular creature, she would tell her later, that she could never be this loud.

They ran in the opposite direction of the roars, that clearly became louder and closer each passing second. Marie could even hear, what sounded like trees snapping behind them and a few moments later, they could distantly make out Quint’s screams mixed in between the angry roars. Marie did not even care to try to imagine how the warrior was killed effortlessly by the beast.

Lexa pushed the girl ahead, when Marie started to slow slightly and loudly proclaimed “We need to hide” looking around them desperately for a place to hide from the beast, that would reach them in a few seconds.

Suddenly, Clarke changed her direction and called behind them “This way. I found something” motioning to an opening. Clarke stood in front of, what looked to be an old huge pipe, that was closed by a metal grate.

Aleo quickly helped her with pulling the grate aside and they slipped into the pipe, as the roars continued to increase in intensity behind them.

But the escape route Clarke had found, did turn out to be in fact the way to the feeding ground of the creature. Parts of animal corpses lay scattered everywhere, with piles of bones.

Marie scrunched her face up in disgust as flies swarmed around the older corpses and the smell of the place was anything but nice, her stomach churned uncomfortably and she had to forcefully swallow down the bile rising in her throat.

Before they had a chance to really look for a better place to hide, they could hear the creature approaching them even quicker. Marie felt her heart beating quicker in fright, as her fingers tightened around the dagger on her thigh, she doubted it would do any good in fending off the creature though.

Both Lexa and Aleo pulled out their swords ready to defend themselves, when suddenly the huge gorilla jumped from the edge of the wood, right onto Aleo.

Marie’s grey eyes widened with horror at the realization of just how huge and monstrous the beast was. She did not think that there was any sense in trying to fight it with a sword, she doubted a sword would even slice through its probably unnaturally thick skin.

The beast smashed its fists into the man a few times and threw the unconscious man into the opposite wall, with a sickening crunching sound. It was obvious the warrior was dead instantly.

Marie’s grey eyes stayed on the guard’s dead body for a second, as the realization sat into her mind, that they were undoubtedly all going to die in the next few minutes, there was absolutely no way, they would be able to kill this beast.

The beast pounded his fists onto its chest a few times, before it roared at them loudly, as if proclaiming that they were on his land now and it would remove them in a second.

Lexa had positioned herself slightly in front of Marie, pushing the child behind herself, to guard the girl from the attack she was sure would follow soon.

Clarke had shot at the beast with her pistol, but that only seemed to incense the creature, as it threw a large stone into their direction with another loud roar which rang uncomfortably in Marie’s ears.

Clarke fired a few more times at the gorilla and the beast fell backwards into a small precipice.

Marie let out a relived breath, as they had seemed to win against all odds against the gorilla.

They were all panting slightly, when suddenly the gorilla started to climb back up from the precipice and into their direction.

“Run” Lexa screamed and pulled Marie in the other direction, away from the beast.

They managed to escape the gorilla for a short amount of time, before the beast spotted them again. They stood in front of a railing under which an abyss with a small opening was visible.

Marie wondered absentmindedly just what this structure could have been for in the old world.

Without any better idea on where to hide, Clarke sprang down the abyss.

Lexa pushed Marie to follow the older blonde girl and sheathed her sword into place, looking back over her shoulder minutely to assess just how far ahead they were of the beast, which unfortunately was not much.

Marie managed to land without hurting herself and followed Clarke to the opening, before she heard Lexa crying out in obvious pain.

The commander had obviously not landed well and had hurt herself on the impact, lying on the ground for a moment, before a loud roar from above her, forced Lexa to try to get back to her feet.

“Lexa” Marie shouted worried and ran back to the commander, just like Clarke also did.

Together they helped Lexa up and had the commander lean on themselves in support to get her to the opening.

Clarke climbed through the small opening first followed closely by Marie.

Before Lexa could follow them, the gorilla finally was on her and pulled on her leg strongly, roaring angrily.

“Leave me” the commander shouted out loud, when both Marie and Clarke tried to help her.

“No way” Clarke loudly declared and started to shoot at the beast with her pistol again.

The beast did not seem to let go of the commander’s leg, so Marie, who had no intention at all of leaving Lexa behind to be killed like Aleo had been, had also taken her own dagger and aimed it at the beast’s head and threw the blade with all the strength she could muster at the moment.

The blade landed in a perfect hit in one of the creature’s eyes. The gorilla seemed to howl out in pain and suddenly let go of Lexa’s leg, his huge hands moving over his head for a moment.

Clarke needed only this short moment, to pull Lexa through the opening and quickly kicked away the metal rod, which had held it open before and a metal hatch fell shut with a swooshing sound, separating them and the beast.

Marie registered with widening eyes, that they might have escaped from the gorilla for now, but they had run into a deadlock, there was no apparent other exit visible and they were surrounded by huge stone and metal walls.

Clarke closed the next door behind them, while Marie searched the small room for another exit, but to her great internal worry, she could not detect one.

Lexa panted heavily and cradled one of her arms in front of her chest, which had obviously gotten injured during the jump.

Clarke took Lexa’s sword to block the door from the inside, while the angry roars outside got louder and more frequent again.

Marie worriedly watched Lexa lean on a pillar, her face contorted in obvious pain. The girl had never seen the ever-stoic commander in any physical pain or at least not expressing it freely and the sight somehow frightened her deeply.

She also recognized with a sad feeling that she had already lost the dagger now. She felt the now empty scabbard on her thigh. Marie guessed that Lexa or Anya would surely be able to get another knife for her, but it would not be the same.

Lexa watched the girl hover in front of her. The girl’s grey eyes clearly portrayed the girl’s distress and worry for her.

After having secured the door, Clarke had ripped a strip of fabric from her shirt to make a make-shift sling for the commander’s arm.

Lexa let the blonde leader tie her injured arm in front of her chest, saying in a serious voice “You should have left me behind. Now three will die here, instead of one”.

Marie swallowed uncomfortably. Would Lexa really have just sacrificed herself for them like that? She knew that she technically had not listened to the commander’s orders, but she would never have thought of actually leaving Lexa behind to die.

Clarke spoke up “I am still new to your culture, but when someone saves your life, my people say thank you” she commented, blue eyes glaring at the commander.

“I am serious, Clarke,” Lexa continued still serious, watching the blonde leader, while Clarke tested the grate on the other site “to lead well, you must make hard choices” the commander added after a beat of silence. 

“Hard choices?” Clarke asked, whirling around to face the commander, in an almost mocking tone she added “You are telling me that…”

“I have seen your strength, it is true” Lexa answered still calm “But now you waver. You couldn’t kill Quint, you couldn’t leave me to die. That was weakness.”

“I thought love was weakness” Clarke retorted angrily.

Marie stayed silent and just watched their confrontation. It was obvious Lexa was distressed and she highly doubted that her own input would be welcomed at the moment.

“Mockery is not the product of a strong mind, Clarke” Lexa answered, a hint of anger laced into her tone.

“You wanna know why I saved you?” Clarke had turned to Lexa again “Because I need you. God forbid one of your generals becomes commander. You may be heartless, Lexa, but at least you are smart.”

Marie pursued her lips silently. What she had seen from the commander until now, was anything but heartless.

To Marie's puzzlement, Lexa actually smiled slightly, when she answered Clarke “Don’t worry. My spirit will choose much more wisely than that.”

“Your spirit?” Clarke asked obviously confused.

Marie had heard some things from Anya about the commander’s spirit already, so what Lexa said next was not completely new to her.

“When I die, my spirit will find the next commander” Lexa explained calmly.

“Reincarnation” Clarke said in realization almost just to herself “That’s how you became commander?” she asked, honest interest evident in her blue eyes.

“How are your leaders chosen?” Lexa asked with open interest, after nodding in agreement.

Before Clarke could answer the commander’s question, a loud roar resonated from the other side of the door and the door shook visibly, when the beast started to pound on it from the other side.

Marie shrieked lowly in startlement and Lexa shoved the girl behind herself again.

“It found us” Clarke panted with wide eyes.

“Do not be afraid Clarke” Lexa said completely calm “Death is not the end.”

“We are not dying here” Clarke countered sounding slightly angry “I need your spirit to stay where it is.”

“Stay behind me” Lexa ordered to Marie and pulled out her dagger “Then get ready to fight, he is coming in.”

“Maybe we let it in” Clarke said suddenly, as if she had an idea and sprinted past Lexa who watched the other leader with a confused stare.

Clarke had moved to the door and said urgently to them “Come here”.

Both Marie and Lexa hastened to follow her order and Marie stood pressed beside Lexa at the door. The sword was already deformed and would not hold the door closed for much longer.

“Now!” Clarke suddenly shouted and pushed the sword out of the brackets.

It fell to the ground with a clinking sound and not a second later, the door was almost blasted open by the impact of the gorilla. The creature bounced into the small room looking for them.

Clarke had pushed Marie through the door already and said loudly to Lexa to go. She left the room last and hastened to pull the door closed behind them, securing the door on the other side with a heavy metal hatch.

Marie looked at the door with widened eyes, the gorilla had already started to pound against the door angrily, now that it was shut inside of the small room. She silently wondered how long it would take the beast to escape its prison again. To her great wonder, she noticed something gleaming next to her feet and found her dagger lying on the ground. With a disgusted face, she removed some of the blood from the blade by rubbing some leaves over the metal. With a small happy smile, the girl put her dagger back where it belonged and smiled at Lexa who had watched her silently.

“Let’s go” Clarke said urgently, wanting to get as much distance between this door and themselves as possible, before the beast would break free again.

 

Chapter 50

Marie wondered just how far away from TonDC they already were, she had lost track of the distance as Lexa had hurried her through the woods before. But she knew that travelling through the woods in darkness was dangerous. Clarke had run out of bullets and Lexa was injured, so they would probably not be able to efficiently protect themselves against possible predators.

Clarke had identified the old structure the beast used as its feeding ground as a zoo from the old world.

Lexa had read of this term in an old book before, but she had not thought that something like that had endured the end of the world.

Marie had also heard of what a zoo had been in the previous world. It seemed as if the beast had somehow survived the end of the world and simply remained close to the place, it had been confined in before, maybe even into which cages it had been born. Absentmindedly, she wondered if the beasts had always been this huge, strong and brutal. But that would have made holding them caged in for people to look at, impossibly hard, so maybe the creatures had grown lager through the radiation.

She tried to assist Lexa in climbing over some of the obstacles on their way back into the woods and they walked for what felt like an hour or two, before they could not hear the roaring of the gorilla anymore. Marie hoped that once the beast would break down the door, they would be back at TonDC but she really had no idea how far away that might be and she could see Lexa grimacing with every step they took. She concluded that the beast must live far away from TonDC as to not pose a daily threat to the village and she could not remember hearing these roars before, so they probably still had quiet some distance to cross.

The commander obviously tried hard to conceal her pain, but if you looked closely enough, you could still see it in the tightening of her yaw and the effort in her green eyes.

“Should we take a break?” Marie suggested faintly, looking up at the commander with a slightly hopeful expression. She thought that Lexa should rest and she also felt the strain of the day quite clearly.

The commander contemplated their position to TonDC and how long they would need to reach the village. It was starting to turn dark and she knew that travelling through the woods in her state and with Clarke unarmed and Marie too inexperienced to really help in a fight, it was unwise to push them through the night. So, she reluctantly nodded, although she could clearly picture Gustus and Anya worrying back in TonDC, both of them must have caught on with the fact, that she was not simply taking a walk through the woods. It had been hours now since they left TonDC and she grimaced at the thought of the state of the army, if they noticed that their leader was missing.

Lexa had let them continue for some more moments, until she found a place she was satisfied to settle down for the night.

Under her guidance, Marie constructed a small camp fire, smiling proudly when she got the logs burning after only two tries.

Lexa had sat down, propped up slightly against a tree log.

Clarke also watched the girl’s efforts with a furrowed brow. The blonde leader had clearly not expected the other girl to adapt o Trikru as quickly and as easily as it seemed.

“You can rest” Lexa said to Clarke in an even tone “We will take the first watch.” She would not trust the blonde leader to take watch at all and she was not convinced that Marie would be fit to stay awake on her own for a few hours and still manage to recognize any dangers approaching them.

Clarke seemed to think the offer over for a moment, before she nodded in silent agreement and laid down next to the small fire, turning her back towards the commander and Marie.

“Come here” Lexa said to Marie and the girl obediently sat down next to Lexa, eying the commander mutely, worry still visible in the girl’s grey eyes.

“I will be fine” Lexa said reassuringly, wanting to ease the girl’s worry, before she hardened her eyes slightly and continued in a firm tone “When you are given a command by me, I expect you to follow that. To the point and without hesitation” she reprimanded the girl sharply.

Marie winced visibly at the reproach and looked slightly downtrodden. The girl knew what Lexa meant “But I could not simply let that beast kill you and watch you die, Lexa” she tried to justify her actions in a strong tone.

The commander’s lips thinned slightly in reaction “The day will come, when you must. I am just the vessel of the commander’s spirit and when I fall and my spirit choses the next commander, you will aid the next commander.”

Marie furrowed her brow and shook her head vehemently “But you are not just the commander to me, you are Lexa. I could not leave you behind, Lexa” she reasoned hotly. It was clear that she would disregard the same command again, if she thought it necessary.

Lexa’s eyes softened slightly on the emphasis of her name in the girl’s words. She had learned from a young age that her own life mattered very little. She was the commander’s vessel and there would always be a commander after her, but she had obviously forgotten that there were people who still cared for her life just for her and not because she was the commander.

“Are you angry with me?” the girl questioned in a rather small voice, when Lexa had not said anything again in a few minutes. Marie had learned already that the commander often used her silence as a means to convey her displeasure.

Lexa shook her head in the negative and the girl let out a relived breath, before her grey eyes seemed to widen again “You almost died…” she chocked out in shocked realization.

As the girl’s words trailed off, Lexa could see the child’s grey eyes beginning to glisten with a sheen of unshed tears. “But I did not. Thanks to you and Clarke” Lexa said with an honest smile on her face, as she offered her uninjured arm to Marie.

The girl scrambled closer to Lexa and cautiously wound her arms around Lexa’s midriff pressing her face against Lexa’s shoulder, apprehensive of causing the woman any additional pain.

When the commander felt her young charge shudder slightly in the weird embrace, she knew that the girl had started to cry.

“Shhh” Lexa soothed her gently, rubbing the girl’s back with her free hand “I am here and nothing will happen now. We are safe, skaifaya” she reassured the child in a soft tone.

Lexa had no idea, if Clarke was feigning to have fallen asleep already or if the blonde Skykru leader really had let her guard down this quickly. The commander in her reeled at the trust such a gesture as falling asleep in another’s presence conveyed. If the roles were reversed, Lexa would definitely have declined the offer to sleep. But a small part of her felt slightly honoured, that Clarke obviously felt safe enough in their presence to let her guard down to such a degree and sleep.

It did not take Marie long to drift off into an exhausted sleep, comforted by the commander’s strong heartbeat.

The girl now slept with her head pillowed by Lexa’s legs, while the commander watched the flames and scanned their surroundings every few minutes. Fortunately, the woods stayed quiet around them apart from the little sounds of the animals moving around them. Absentmindedly, Lexa stroked over Marie’s hair occasionally or twirled her dagger between her fingers. She was used to keeping watch through a night. Although it had always been unlikely, that she would need to do such on a regular basis after her nightblood was revealed, Anya had never distinguished between the duties and lessons she deemed important for Lexa, always instilling into her that she needed to be familiar with the duties of a normal warrior to understand their needs.

The conversation she had had with Clarke encased in the small room flashed through her mind unbidden. Did the other girl really think her heartless? Forming the coalition had not always been easy. She had had to make a few very hard choices, locking her heart away in the process and solely listening to her head. But she strived to form the coalition for her people, all of her people. Too many children lost their parents in senseless skirmishes for land and resources. She knew, that her people would prosper once they had learned to efficiently share and trade their goods and knowledge.

The willingness to sacrifice your own personal feelings and wants was what made her a good commander or so Lexa thought. Her sacrifices would have been worth it, when her people would finally have peace in the end. Looking down at the sleeping girl using her legs as a pillow, Lexa thought that Marie most definitely did not regard her as heartless. She was also fairly certain that Anya and Gustus would not describe her as such either.

With an annoyed huff, Lexa wondered why she even cared about what the blonde Skykru leader thought of her. She had never before been personally offended, when another clan leader insulted her in any way, which had happened quite frequently in the past, especially in the first years of her reigns, where she still had to establish her claim on the role of the commander. She was annoyed with herself for feeling slightly hurt at Clarke’s comment. So, Lexa firmly banished all of her thoughts from her mind and kept her consciousness solely focused on their surroundings.

The commander did not wake Marie or Clarke to take over the watch. She would not have slept then anyway. The girl had looked peaceful in her slumber, although she had some time ago wound her arms around one of Lexa’s legs, as if to subconsciously make sure she was still there. The position was not the most comfortable and due to the girl lying partly on herself, she could not move around without waking her. Her shoulder throbbed painfully with every breath she took, but she had been hurt far worse before and she was certain there would not be any lasting damage.

When the sun was slowly starting to rise, a loud roar resonated through the woods again in some distance.

The sound awoke Clarke and Marie instantly at the same time.

Clarke startled awake and searched their surroundings with startled eyes, while Marie shortly tightened her hold on Lexa’s leg, before she sat up and stretching slightly.

“It is okay” Lexa said to Clarke “You are safe” in reassurance. She hid the frown wanting to rise on her features, as she wondered why she was trying to reassure the blonde leader at all. 

Clarke nodded faintly, before she turned around to face Lexa and Marie.

Lexa could see Clarke’s eyes widening, when she saw the smaller girl sitting completely at ease next to the commander, so closely that their legs were still touching.

“How is your arm?” Clarke asked after a second with honest eyes.

Lexa simply said “hurts” as an answer, keeping her tone and face almost expressionless.

She could see Clarke frowning at her nonchalant reaction.

The blonde leader could not know, that it was an enormous show of trust on the commander’s part already to admit to being in pain in front of her at all. Pain was weakness and with many other clan leaders, she could not be this honest, but she sensed, that Clarke would not try to exploit her injury. She had learnt, that the young woman was a healer of sorts, so it must be in her nature to fuss over an injury.

“We should go” Clarke suddenly said, standing up “That cage won’t hold forever” worry flitted over her features.

Lexa nodded and Marie also stood up, brushing some leaves from her coat as she stood. The commander wondered, if the beast was still in the cage or if the loud roar a few moments prior had marked its escape. But she still had to tell the other leader something, before they returned to TonDC. Something that she had not managed to push from her mind the whole night, no matter how hard she had tried.

“Wait” Lexa said to Clarke lowly, stopping her movements and stood up, coming to stand next to the other leader “I was wrong about you, Clarke. Your heart shows no sign of weakness” she proclaimed in a serious tone.

The blonde seemed slightly surprised to hear her say something like that, but she just nodded in acceptance, before Lexa could see an idea flash up in her blue eyes.

“The cage won’t hold” Clarke mumbled before turning back to Lexa and speaking louder again “I think I know how to take Mount Weather. We have been trying to get inside. But they have already let us in”.

“What are you talking about?” Lexa asked confused by the other’s thoughts. They were quite obviously all outside of Mount Weather and not inside.

“Your army is already there” Clarke explained with confident words “Locked in cages. We just need someone on the inside to let them out.”

Lexa pondered her words for a moment. They had seen how weak Anya had been when she made it to TonDC. The question was how her health had been before she had been shot by Skykru. She remembered how Clarke had enumerated that Anya had already been physically drained, when she had freed the general from her cage. They had no idea just how long her people were already caged in the Mountain, but Lexa strongly doubted that a high percentage of them would be physically in a better condition than Anya had been in. And Clarke’s plan was still based completely on Bellamy’s ability to infiltrate the Mountain. She still was sure that relying on one man was not a good plan. “So Bellamy” Lexa said with distaste, her face clearly showing her reluctance to accept such a plan.

But Clarke nodded vigorously in agreement, so Lexa asked “You have faith in him?” looking deeply into her blue eyes and searching for the truth in them.

“I do” Clarke retorted in a heartbeat, obviously not doubting Bellamy’s ability to succeed for a second.

“I hope your faith is well placed” Lexa said still doubtful “Because if he can’t get inside, we can’t win.” She knew that the blonde had a point and that her army would be useless against the acid fog. She would just lead her army into their sure deaths, if they could not somehow lower the Mountain’s defences.

“He will” Clarke confirmed again, already kicking out the fire “Lexa, this is going to work. Come on” she urged them to get moving.

Lexa nodded in mute agreement, motioning Marie to come as well.

The girl obliged silently without question. Marie internally wondered how Bellamy thought it possible to blend in with the Mountain Men, without being noticed. She was still sticking out strongly among Trikru, so she doubted it would be much easier for Bellamy there.

In her head, Lexa debated how to convince her generals to grant Bellamy a few days to accomplish his task. To her, it did not really make a difference how fast they were going to attack. They had already lost thousands to the Mountain. As hard as that sounded, she would need to be sure that they had a chance to win, before she would order her army to attack.

Before, they had always known that those who entered the Mountain would never return, she would be happy to save as many of her people as possible, but her priority had to be with those that were outside of the Mountain and to lay waste to the Mountain, so that finally no one else would get taken in there.

 

 

 

 

 

 

Chapter 6: Chapter 51 - 60

Chapter Text

Chapter 51

Lexa guided them through the woods with a fast pace, eager to return to TonDC as quickly as possible. She knew without a sliver of doubt that, her people would start to get anxious, when it was discovered that their commander had gone missing.

Marie’s stamina had already improved somewhat, so the young girl had it easier to keep up with Lexa’s fast strides. Having been able to rest of for a few hours of the last night, had helped in restoring her strength as well, although she had begun to feel hungry and parched some time ago now. It was obvious that Lexa had no intention of making a stop before they reached TonDC.

But it was also obvious that Clarke was struggling with their pace, combined with the uneven ground of the woods. The blonde young woman was heaving loudly, clearly out of breath, and had to steady herself every few moments, stumbling over through the underbrush.

So, Lexa reigned in her impatience and slowed them down slightly. It would not do for Marie or Clarke to fall and injure themselves as well, they would get even slower in that case.

It took them until early midday to reach the perimeter covered with scouts from TonDC.

Two warriors suddenly dropped out of trees in front of them with their weapons drawn. They hastily put their swords back into their sheaths, when they recognized the commander and bowed reverently.

“Alert my guard that I will be in TonDC shortly” Lexa ordered to the younger of them, who quickly turned and vanished between the trees in the direction of TonDC.

The other warrior looked at her arm still bound by the make-shift sling with a frown, but the man dared not to question his commander.

A silent waving gesture of Lexa’s hand was enough to make the man return to his watch post in the tree.

The rest of the short walk was spent in silence. Marie was internally relieved that they had nearly reached TonDC, her legs had begun to get heavy with the strain of the constant quick pace and she had been wondering if Anya had been searching for her through the night. The woman could not possibly have known, where she had vanished to.

On the outskirt of TonDC, Lexa could make out Gustus and Anya waiting for their arrival and with a frown she also spotted Indra, Clarke’s mother and the Skykru girl who had taken a liking to Lincoln with them. The latter, should all have been in the Skykru’s settlement to her knowledge, she had not given any contrary orders.

She could see her young charge smiling slightly out of the corner of her eyes, when Marie spotted Anya among the small group. She motioned the girl to stay beside herself and not run ahead with a subtle gesture, putting an impatient frown on the child’s features, but she nevertheless obeyed.

“What happened?” Anya immediately asked, when they were in earshot, her brown eyes inquiring and the worry of the last night was evident in the lines in her face.

Gustus and Indra both looked relieved to see their commander return alive. Both of them must have noted on Aleo’s absence instantly.

“We have run into a mutant gorilla” Marie chirped in quickly, stepping closer to Anya, before Lexa even had the chance to respond.

Anya’s eyes widened almost comically and her startled expression was mirrored on the faces of the others.

Warriors seldom survived facing a gorilla and quiet a lot of hunters had already been lost to the beasts. The woods around TonDC housed a pair of them and people stayed clear of the area they were known to live.

Clarke could not have possibly known that of course, Lexa wondered absentmindedly if the blonde leader would have left TonDC in that direction and crossed such a distance, if she had been aware of the possible threat.

“Chancellor, what brings you to TonDC?” Lexa formally asked, face impassive, as she interrupted Marie. Her interruption was a subtle enough sign for their charge to remain silent for now.

Abby had stepped up to Clarke and had checked her daughter over quickly for any visible injuries and was obviously relieved to find her daughter whole and unharmed. “A messenger had told me that Clarke was missing” Abby answered quickly “I wanted to know what had happened to her.”

The commander inclined her head in acceptance and offered “Accommodations can be provided for you, of course until you return to your settlement.”

Abby nodded mutely in acceptance and Lexa walked past her and Clarke, while the rest of the group followed her to her tent.

Lexa sat down onto her throne, while Gustus summoned Nyko, so that the healer could take a look at her injured arm, although she had already told them it was nothing serious.

“Are you hurt as well?” Anya asked Marie, slightly concerned although she had not been able to spot any injuries on their charge.

Marie shook her head in the negative and said “Only Lexa hurt herself when she fell” as an explanation, grey eyes compassionate.

Lexa bit her tongue in hidden annoyance at the girl’s free proclamation, she had not planned to reveal that detail at all.

Anya scrunched her brow and echoed with a raised brow “Fell?”

Marie animatedly described, how they had tried to escape from the gorilla and how Lexa had fallen from the impact from the jump.

Lexa let the girl retell the story in her own words, she had come to know the child as too talkative and open with Anya to order her to remain silent. Marie would simply tell Anya the whole story later on the first moment of her absence anyway, this way she would be able to correct the child, if she exaggerated her words.

At the end of their tale, Anya smirked at Lexa, amusement dancing through her brown eyes, but fortunately remained silent for now, hearing the healer’s footsteps approaching the commander’s tent.

Lexa rolled her eyes mutely at her former mentor, while Nyko re-entered the tent, closely followed by Gustus.

The healer quickly examined her arm and came to the same conclusion, she already had on her own. The shoulder and arm hurt, but she could still move the arm and fortunately no bones had been broken. So, it was just an annoying injury, that would heal with a little time and nothing serious to worry over.

“And why are you back in TonDC?” Lexa wanted to know from Indra, when the healer had left her tent a short moment later.

Marie had gone behind the curtain with Anya and was probably washing herself, judging by the occasional sound of a cloth being squeezed out of water.

“Abby had demanded to go to TonDC” Indra explained “I could not let her travel alone and the messenger had already left”.

Lexa nodded in silent acceptance. It would not have been advisable to let the Sky people travel without supervision, she did not trust them to cause more trouble.

Indra continued “I also seek permission to take Octavia from the Sky people as my second.” The dark skinned general shortly gestured to the girl standing behind her.

Octavia stood slightly taller, when she heard her name and her eyes shown eagerly to be accepted in this new role.

Lexa nodded again with an impassive expression, although she internally was surprised by this piece of news.

Indra had been steadfastly against even considering to take Marie as her second when asked, opting to have the girl killed instead. So, something must have happened between both of them for Indra to agree to take Octavia as her second. Indra rarely took seconds at all any longer, so it was a great honour for Octavia to now be the general’s second.

The commander dismissed the general and her new second moments later, when Marie returned from behind the curtain with Anya.

Her former mentor had a smirk on her face when she teased good-naturedly “So the mighty Heda is defeated by a mere wall in a fight against a gorilla…”

Lexa grumbled something lowly under her breath, too low to understand any words, which only made Anya laugh out loud.

Marie had been watching the exchange with confusion on her face, but when she caught up with what Anya implied, her face fell and she looked at the older woman reproachfully, grey eyes accusing and arms crossed over her chest.

It was Lexa’s turn to burst out laughing, when Marie explained to Anya in a serious tone that making fun of Lexa for that was mean of Anya.

The look of utter disbelief on Anya’s face, had Lexa immediately forget her previous slight annoyance in seconds.

Marie was even more confused by that reaction and looked at Lexa questioningly “What is funny now?” her voice had a hint of a pout in it and it was obvious that she did not understand the exchange.

Lexa sobered quickly, but she still chuckled slightly, when she answered “You managed to shut Anya up. Not such a small feat, I might add.”

Now Anya lightly glared at the commander, but kept silent for now.

Lexa had a soft expression on her face, when she complimented Marie “How you managed to hit the gorilla in the eyes was also a great feat.”

The girl seemed to glow under her praise and smiled widely at Lexa.

Anya immediately wanted to know what exactly she meant by that, but Lexa let Marie tell the other woman about this part of the story.

So, the commander just listened as Marie recollected, how she had saved Lexa with Clarke.

Anya looked slightly impressed at the girl’s involvement, but Lexa could see a flash of concern in her brown eyes, when the woman realized how close to death Lexa really had been.

Anya was relieved to see Lexa smiling, even just for short moments. When the commander had sent her away from Polis, she knew that a part of Lexa had died alongside Costia. It seemed that Marie had helped Lexa in a way no one else had been able to so far, rekindling a part of the commander she had feared to be lost forever.

Even for herself, there had been a time years ago, where she had lost sight of the sense of all the fighting. She had just lost her younger sister to the Mountain and a few weeks later a group of bandits from Azgeda had attacked the small journey of merchants traveling from Polis back into their villages in Trikru. Her older brother had been with them and with him the last part of her family had died. Anya had been consumed with grief and a blind thirst for revenge, she had barely finished her own education as a second. Her own mentor had watched her spiral into the abyss of anger and hate. When she had joined a group of young Trikru soldiers to raid Azgeda villages next to their borders and had barely survived their insane skirmish, her mentor had taken her to the side again. She had raged at the older woman that with the death of the last part of her family and everyone she had cared about there was no sense in fighting anymore. The woman had let her rage for as long as she wanted, baring the storm of her emotion without reacting to them. When her rage had burnt down and all that was left behind was emptiness, her mentor had taken her to another village. She had been introduced to a small orphaned child, a boy named Thaim. Her mentor had told her to take care of him and she would learn again why they would forever continue to fight. She had been right. Taking care and training a child had awakened something within her again and so it seemed to have also now happened to Lexa.

The commander was pleased to hear that Anya and Gustus had kept her disappearance mostly silent. Her army would most likely not have reacted well to the news that their commander and the Skykru leader had gone missing together, probably expecting some sort of assassination attempt.

Anya also seemed to do better. Marie had apparently re-opened part of the gunshot wound when her staff had hit her, but according to Nyko the wound was healing nicely and her strength was slowly rebuilding.

Lexa told Anya of the plan Clarke had come up with “If Bellamy gets into the Mountain, he can free our people and we already have an army inside” her voice sounded slightly faltering even to her own ears and her doubts were directly reflected on her former mentor’s face.

“Her plan has a huge flaw” Anya said after a few moments of silence “Most of our people locked there in cages won’t be able to fight. I was barely able to walk, I would not have been able to escape without Clarke. They keep us in a sort of daze with something they inject.”

Lexa gnashed her teeth together, mutely deep in thought, that was exactly what she had feared “Clarke is right that we need the acid fog gone, leading the army against Mount Weather would just kill us all otherwise.”

Anya nodded with a contemplative expression and although she did not see a high chance of the Skykru boy to succeed, she had no alternative plan to offer that could promise a higher chance of success.

They were interrupted when Gustus proclaimed Clarke’s arrival at the commander’s tent.

The blonde young woman stormed into the tent with purposeful strides and directly said “I will leave to Arkadia now, with my mother. I need to know, if Bellamy has checked in yet. And maybe Raven can come up with something to destroy the dam.”

The commander nodded “Indra and a few of my warriors will escort you to your settlement. And you will be assigned a personal guard” she declared strongly.

Clarke opened her mouth, obviously intent to reject the offered guard, but Lexa continued not giving her the opportunity to speak her mind “As a leader of your people you need to be guarded, Clarke” when the other still looked at her sceptically, Lexa added a little more forcefully “Even I have guards with me at all times. The generals of the other clans are expected to arrive in the next two days, you will be needed here for the next war council.”

The blonde sighed, obviously still reluctant to accept, but she nodded her consent.

The commander had quickly organised a small group of warriors to escort Skykru back to their camp, as well as scouts to search the way beforehand. Lexa had given Indra strict orders on who to listen to in the Skykru camp should there be any problem. For her, it remained true that Clarke was Skykru’s leader and not her mother. The commander had made sure that they would be riding to their settlement or they would never be able to reach it until nightfall.

Marie and Anya had watched with varying degrees of amusement, how both Clarke and Abby were helped onto a horse and the girl was snickering quietly at the open fright on Abby’s face. She had come to love the big animals, but obviously the others still needed to see what she loved so much about them.

Just as the small group had ridden out of sight from TonDC, another group arrived in TonDC from the opposite direction.

Marie could see Anya stiffening slightly next to her and she cast the woman a worried glance and Lexa had quickly removed the bandage around her arm.

The newcomers dismounted in perfect sync, but it was obvious they were not welcomed in TonDC judging from the glares they received. The atmosphere had instantly gotten tense and Marie could see several warriors tightening their grasps around their weapons, as if they were expecting a fight to break out any second.

The commander approached the small group with a carefully blank face and greeted the general who had led the group.

“They are Ice Nation, are they not?” Marie whispered to Anya inquiringly, to which the woman only gave a curt nod, her brown eyes not leaving the other warriors.

After the warriors had discarded their hoods, Marie could plainly see scars forming patterns on their faces and their armour was aligned with thick furs, which she had not seen so far with Trikru soldiers.

The tension was diffused somewhat, when another group entered TonDC on horseback only a short moment later.

Their clothes were completely different from Trikru, while Trikru mostly wore dark and earthy colours, those people wore light clothes. The one proceeding the group, had some bright yellow strips of cloth interwoven in her dark blonde hair.

“Desert clan” Anya offered as an explanation, when Marie looked up at her questioningly.

A few buildings had been cleared in TonDC and extra tents had been set up to house the generals and attendants of the other clans.

The night was interrupted time and time again by generals arriving in TonDC and the commander was barely able to catch any sleep.

Lexa did not want to keep on waking up Anya and Marie, who were still lying beside her bed on their furs.

After the second time she had been woken by Gustus during the night, Lexa opted to rest sitting on her throne. Annoyed, the commander internally wondered if the generals had planned their arrivals in the middle of the night and separated by barely an hour in between, just to spite her.

But the clans were finally getting what she had promised, when she had started to form the coalition. Her strongest argument in the beginning had been, that they could just fell the Mountain if they combined their strength, which made her wonder with a slight frown, just what would be happening to her coalition if they truly succeeded to win this war.

 

 

Chapter 52

When Marie woke the next morning, she was still snuggled up to Anya. Cautiously, she extracted herself from the still sleeping woman. Through the thin material of the tent, she could see that the sun had not started to rise yet and a glance at Lexa’s bed showed the absence of the other woman. Marie noted with a frown that the commander’s bed looked completely untouched and she wondered if Lexa had slept at all last night.

Silently, Marie tiptoed behind the curtain and made a surprised sound, when she spotted Lexa dozing lightly on her throne still dressed in the commander’s full armour.

The sound however faint it had been startled Lexa awake instantly and Marie noticed the dark shadows under her green eyes, indicating the increasing exhaustion the other woman must feel. “Can I get you anything?” the girl asked in a kind voice, reflecting her worry for the commander, as she stepped closer.

Lexa tiredly rubber at her eyes and let out a hiss of pain, when she moved her injured arm, forgetting momentarily of the injury. Having slept sitting clad in full armour had aggravated the discomfort she felt and her shoulder seemed to give a slight painful throb with every heartbeat.

“You can get Nyko” Lexa said to the girl, voice thick with sleep still, to which Marie nodded enthusiastically, obviously pleased to be helpful in any way, as an afterthought the commander added “But I do not want you wandering TonDC on your own right now”. With the arrival of the generals of the other clans, it was no longer safe for their second to walk through the village unsupervised, Trikru might have accepted the girl mostly, but that would not mean that the other clans would accept the child as well in such a fashion.

Marie pursed her lips slightly in irritation, but nodded in agreement, sensing that arguing with the tired woman now was not a good idea. Internally she thought, that she could defend herself if needed. To the girl’s great discomfort, only Gustus stood post at the entrance of the commander’s tent. Marie still couldn’t really muster the courage to look at the man.

Gustus of course instantly agreed to accompany the girl to the healer’s hut.

On their way to Nyko, Marie could spot various new arrivals in TonDC. All of them seemed to turn their heads, when Gustus and she walked past them. Fortunately, no one dared to approach Gustus who was well known as the commander’s personal guard.

Gustus was slightly unnerved by the girl’s sudden quietness around him, he had come to like the child’s chirpy talkativeness. To finally clear the tenseness between them, he pulled Marie to the side before they entered Nyko’s hut.

The sudden alarm flashing through Marie’s eyes, only convinced Gustus that he really needed to talk with the girl urgently. He crouched down in front the girl to be on the same level with her, which only made her eyes widen in obvious confusion.

Internally Gustus wondered, if Marie really had feared that he would attack her out of revenge for Sierra. “Listen to me” Gustus said to the girl in an even honest voice, his dark eyes boring into hers “And listen well, because I will not repeat myself.” The girl nodded mutely so Gustus continued “I do not blame you for Sierra’s death”.

 When the girl made to open her mouth, Gustus shook his head, not giving her the chance to interrupt and said “I do not! You did the right thing. I should not have taken the blame for her sins, Marie.”

“But you had to …” Marie tried to retort with an unsteady voice “…to cut into her and all because of me…”.

Gustus again shook his head “You still do not understand what such an execution means to us”, when the girl looked at him with confused grey eyes, he added “I would have put shame to my whole family, my position and the commander, if I had been executed while Sierra lived. No matter what sins you might have committed, by accepting the death of a thousand cuts we clear the culprit. If a member of your family is to be executed it is seen as a dishonour to not participate and by thus not accept the punishment.”

Marie still looked slightly confused, but she nodded mutely with a cautious expression, she would need some time to contemplate Gustus’ words first.

More to himself than to Marie he added “And Sierra might have even tried again to go against the alliance later" regret and grief flashed over his features minutely.

Marie tentatively smiled at the burly man, who nodded once more to her and stood up, opening the healer’s hut, as he did.

Nyko immediately gathered, what he might need for the commander and together they quickly made their way back to the commander’s tent.

When they entered, Anya had also already gotten up and was sipping a steaming cup of tea.

Alira was still bustling through the tent, after helping the commander doffing off her armour.

The healer made a special brew for the commander, that should keep her alert through the day, despite her lack of sleep and applied a paste to the injured shoulder to aid in the healing and to take the edge of the pain. He also checked on Anya’s injury, removing the dressing carefully. The healer was obviously satisfied with the healing progress, but demanded that the general still should take it easy for the next days or she might undo the healing progress.

“How many clans have already arrived?” Anya asked short moments later, when Alira and Nyko had left and they had sat down to have a quick breakfast together.

“Seven so far, but the others are expected here until tomorrow night, when the war council will take place” Lexa answered, grimacing at the bitter taste of the brew Nyko had provided her with.

“Do you want some honey?” Marie kindly offered a small pot to the commander. After Alira had seen how much the girl clearly enjoyed a bit of honey on a slice of bread and to sweeten tea, she now always made sure to provide a small pot with every meal, she brought to them.

But the commander shook her head, declining the offer and seeing the small frown forming on their charge’s face, she explained “This tonic doesn’t mix well with honey. It counteracts some of the effects so you need to drink it as it is.”

“Oh” Marie said in a sympathetic tone, clearly feeling for Lexa’s suffering. 

“Marie should not wander TonDC on her own, now that other clans have arrived with their delegations” Lexa said to Anya and Gustus, who both nodded, while Marie looked slightly glum, a pout forming on her lips.

Anya shot the girl a warning glare and admonished her “Not all the clans will accept Skykru as friendly as Trikru has”.

“But I am Trikru now, am I not?” the girl asked in a defiant tone.

“For those unfamiliar with you and Skykru, it will only amplify their distrust that you have been integrated in Trikru this quickly and that I have put you under the commander’s protection, will certainly only add to that” Lexa tried to explain to the girl, who now nodded begrudgingly in understanding.

After their breakfast, Lexa made a round through TonDC.

Because Anya still had to take it easy, Lexa had outright forbidden her general to train Marie in combat for the next days. The commander and Gustus would later take some time to continue their training. Anya had grumbled the whole time in clear complain, until they stepped outside of the tent and her face become expressionless, but it still clearly showed how annoyed she was by the orders.

The commander checked in with all the delegations that had arrived so far to confirm that each had settled well into their temporary accommodations.

Tensions were running high in TonDC and it was obvious, that some of the clans would have rather liked to already start fighting each other, which made Lexa wonder again how she was supposed to keep the coalition together should the Mountain truly fall.

None of the generals outright said anything to Marie’s presence, but the judging glances were enough to show Marie, that Lexa had been right and she would avoid going through TonDC on her own from now on. While some of the delegations such as Floukru had only seemed intrigued by the blonde girl, others like Azgeda had looked at her with open hate and distrust.

Marie noticed that the warriors who had previously erected their tents in the free spaces TonDC were now dismantling their tents again. When she questioned Anya for the reason, the general told her that the village was too small to house the army, so that the warriors would fan out in the woods around TonDC, leaving only a small delegation including the generals to settle in the heart of TonDC instead.

Later their training garnered some of the delegations towards the training pits.

Marie was handed some knives to show off her skills with throwing them.

A second from the desert clan, bolder than the others, asked since when the girl has been trained. When answered that her training just started a few days ago, all the assembled visibly seemed impressed.

Even her skills with a bow were enough to show off with the information, that she also had never held a bow prior to getting to earth.

The Azgeda general scorned at the girl, when Gustus had taken position opposite of her to start actual combat training.

Marie had already improved a lot compared to the very first training session, but she still stood no chance against Gustus and being watched by so many had made the girl nervous and flimsy, tripping over her own feet in the first round.

Anya could see the Azgeda general smirking down at the girl, whispering a taunt to a warrior next to him who burst out laughing. She ground her teeth in silent anger, it would not help Marie’s place if she stepped up and defended the girl’s place, she would need to do that herself one day.

What they both had not expected, was for the girl to quickly spring back to her feet with an ambitious glint in her eyes and Marie made a quick combination of attacks on Gustus. She did not bring him to his back, but she did get a hit in successfully.

“Enough” Lexa suddenly proclaimed loudly, nodding at the girl with appraisal in her green eyes.

Marie straightened her back and wiped the sweat from her brow.

They had succeeded to show that Marie had started her training and showed some talent which had been the whole point of this upset.

The commander had to leave again to greet the Broad Leave clan delegation.

At the same time, Indra came back to TonDC with Octavia in tow.

Anya brought Indra to the commander’s tent to wait for Lexa who returned a few minutes later.

Octavia had a photograph in hand, which showed Clarke and the commander and both of their heads had been marked.

Indra explained to Anya that they had had a run in with assassins from Mount Weather and one had survived. It was obvious, that the general was angry that the Skykru had denied her the right to kill the man. Apparently, Bellamy had finally checked in with Skykru and made it into Mount Weather undetected.

Lexa had listened to Indra’s report with a furrowed brow. She wondered how the Mountain Men could have this much knowledge about them. She had no idea how they got a photograph of them. Someone must have watched them, even though she had had the whole woods around TonDC spiked with her own scouts. That Mountain Men had obviously wandered the woods completely undetected and this close to them did not sit well with her at all. “Increase the patrols through the woods” Lexa ordered immediately to Indra, who nodded and left the tent with Octavia trailing behind her mentor.

“Skykru have a weird sense of honour” Anya said with a slight frown, after Indra had left, to which Marie looked at her confused.

Lexa just waved her off with a mute gesture, her thoughts still occupied by something else “How could Mount Weather infiltrate the woods around us? The whole perimeters are scouted rapidly…” It was obvious that the commander was greatly alarmed by the news.

Anya made a noncommittal noise as the only answer, fiddling with Tris’ braid in her fingers. She would have to thank Clarke later, for having Octavia look in their metal ship for her coat. She had been lucky and her coat had still been there with the braid hidden in an inner pocket. Octavia had handed her the coat, while they had waited for the commander to return. Anya had only looked for the braid after Indra and Octavia had left the commander’s tent and was internally grateful that it had still been there.

The night went over in a similar fashion to the previous one. Lexa was awoken by Gustus three times throughout the night to greet another delegation arriving at TonDC. The commander had only caught a few hours of sleep in the early hours of the night and had been lucky that the next delegation arrived just after sunrise.

Now, only two more clans had to make their appearance and Clarke was expected to be back as well.

Lexa was slightly irritated, when Skykru had sent Marcus Kane instead of Clarke. Even though she thought the man had a talent for diplomacy, it was important that Clarke was seen by the other delegations.

Marcus tried to apologize for the girl, telling the commander that something with Bellamy had come up. He also had a draft of a plan with him on how Skykru’s engineers thought of a possibility to destroy the dam and in this way cut Mount Weather from their power supply.

Lexa had still denied Anya the opportunity to train Marie this day, but had relented when Anya suggested to take the girl on a short hunt instead.

So, Anya and Marie left TonDC in the early morning. The general was annoyed with all the useless waiting and needed something to do.

Marie had at first been enthusiastic at the prospect of another hunt, but her spirit had quickly dampened when Anya started criticizing her the very moment, she stepped foot out of TonDC.

Going on a hunt with Lexa had been way more entertaining in her mind, but when Mari said so lowly, Anya had been less than pleased with the grumbled comparison. Her brown eyes were narrowed into angry slits when she jeered “You are still as loud as a pauna”.

Marie bit her lip to keep silent. She had noticed Anya’s mood and impatience and knew better than to rise to the bait, it would only incense Anya further.

Marie was startled, when Anya suddenly sprinted away from her with her swords drawn and she tried to keep up with the woman. She had not noticed anything amiss and she was certain that the woman would not kill prey with her swords.

Suddenly a gunshot resonated through the trees ahead of her, where Anya had disappeared and with a loudly hammering heart and her dagger in hand Marie crept closer to the origin of the sound.

Anya was fighting with a man from Mount Weather, judging by the strange material he was wearing. What her mentor had not seen, was the second man still hidden in the bush.

Marie spotted the man, who was wearing a strange camouflage suit blending him into the surroundings perfectly, taking aim with his gun at Anya, while the woman still fought with the other man. Without further thought, Marie jumped at the man as silent as possible, dagger drawn and rammed the blade into the suit to hit the other’s throat.

The man had not noticed her approach and shock registered on his face, when he ripped the blade from his throat. Blood sprayed through the large tear in the suit onto Marie’s front and hands.

With widened eyes, the girl watched the man falling to the ground clutching at his severely bleeding wound when the skin under his helmet started to blister.

Anya had managed to kill the other one with her sword straight into his heart in the meantime. When the woman saw her charge standing over the second dead warrior, her grey eyes wide and unseeing, she cautiously approached the girl. “Marie?” Anya called for the girl and slowly extended her hand to her.

But when she made contact with Marie, the girl reeled back as if burnt, shaking her head silently crying in shock. Her breathing was erratic, while her eyes switched between her bloody hands and the corpse at her feet in obvious horror.

“Marie” Anya repeated now louder and clearer, she had no idea if there may be more Mountain Men hidden in the vicinity, so they needed to leave to TonDC urgently.

“I ...” Marie started, her eyes now fixed on Anya “I …” but the girl did not manage to get the words out she wanted to.

“Ssshh” Anya shushed her. She knew that the very first kill was the worst, it got easier but she still remembered her own first kill and both Lexa and Tris had not reacted well to their first kills either. She enveloped the girl into her strong arms for a moment “We need to return to TonDC” she said to her young charge with urgency in her voice.

The girl’s eyes had cleared somewhat, although she was still shaking slightly, but she nodded. With shaking hands, the girl retrieved her dagger from the ground, her eyes taking in the blood on the blade.

 Not giving her any more chance to break down in the woods, Anya just grabbed one of Marie’s hand and practically pulled the girl the way back to TonDC.

Lexa took in the girl’s appearance with worried eyes, when they finally made it back to TonDC.

Marie was completely unresponsive at the moment and still had the dagger clutched tightly into her other hand, dried blood smeared over her front, face and hands.

Anya needed to be part of the war council as well, so she steered the girl into the commander’s tent to try and calm Marie as best as she could in the few minutes left, before the war council would gather.

Lexa had looked behind her former mentor and Marie disappearing in the direction of the tent, she knew that Anya would tell her later what had happened in the woods and just before the commander had wanted to call the generals to open the war meeting, two riders approached TonDC at a fast pace. To her great surprise, it was Clarke with the guard she had assigned to her.

“Clarke of the Sky people honours us with her presence” she jeered slightly at the blonde leader telling her that just sending Marcus Kane in her stead was unacceptable.

The other had the decency to blush, but she also just ignored the jab asking for a private audience. The urgent tone of her voice told the commander, that whatever Clarke wanted was important, so she motioned her towards an empty building.

 

Chapter 53

Anya had quickly guided the girl to the commander’s tent, feeling many eyes following the both of them.

The girl was as white as a sheet and had stared blankly through everything, her mind stuck in shock and unable to process what had transpired in the woods. Blood had sprayed over the girl’s hands, face and coat. Due to the dark colour of her coat, the blood was not that obvious on the material, but it contrasted strongly with her pale skin.

Gustus who had been sent from Lexa’s side, when Clarke demanded a private audience was waiting outside of the tent. He had followed the general and their second with a frown. It had not seemed as if the blood had been the girl’s blood at all and he wondered what might have happened.

“Marie” Anya addressed the child in a gentle tone, crouching down in front of her momentarily, but the girl was unresponsive, as if she had not heard her words at all. Anya let the girl standing in the middle of the tent for a moment and collected a basin with fresh water and some cloths to clean the blood from her young charge. She hoped that the process of taking care of the girl, would snap her out of her panic induced haze.

When she returned, the girl still stood where she had left her, shaking visibly and her fingers still clenched strongly around her dagger with such force that Anya feared she may be breaking her fingers if she did not let go soon. The blood on the blade had dried by now.

Cautiously, Anya crouched down in front of the child, taking the hand still clutching the dagger in hers and started to gently pry away the girl’s fingers from the handle, just letting the dagger fall to the floor of the tent with a low thud. She was worried slightly that Marie still had not shown any visible reaction.

Carefully she started to clean the Mountain Man’s blood from Marie’s hand with a wetted cloth.

The girl’s shaking increased with every second and when Anya started to wipe the dried blood from her face, the girl started to blink a few times, as if slowly waking from a haze. Her grey eyes were wide and unfocused.

“I killed him…” the girl said suddenly in a shaky voice “…just like that. He had aimed at you …”

Anya’s eyes softened and she gently framed the girl’s cheeks with her hands “Then you have saved my life, Marie” she tried to appease her upset second. She truly had not noticed the second Mountain Man hidden in the bushes and she knew that she would probably not have survived another gunshot wound. The man would have stood closely enough to her, to make a fatal shot, he would surely have killed Marie afterwards.

“But I just killed him…” the girl’s voice got shriller with each word and tears gathered in her eyes again. She still could vividly see the man reaching up to the tear in his suit, ripping the dagger from his throat and looked at her with widened disbelieving eyes, as he fell to his knees on the ground.

Anya shook her head “The first kill is never easy and killing another should never become easy” she reasoned with the girl in a calm tone, keeping her hands on the child’s shoulders.

“How do you do it then?” Marie asked her voice despaired, as the first tear ran down his cheek, leaving behind a glistening trail.

“You need to remember why you are fighting at all” the woman said in a strong tone and her brown eyes were kind “And you did not hesitate to defend me today. You did well, you will receive you first kill mark for doing so” a hint of pride had laced into her voice.

The girl did not seem reassured at all and just broke out in tears completely.

Anya pulled the child’s body against herself and enveloped her in a strong hug, gently rocking the girl lightly, all the while murmuring nonsense words in her ears. She knew that only time would teach Marie how to deal with the burden of death and there was nothing she could say to truly ease the girl’s agitation.

They were interrupted a few moments later, when suddenly Lexa burst into the tent, closely followed by Clarke.

The blonde leader looked confused, when she noticed Marie’s obvious distress, but she just turned back to Lexa a second later and seemed to take up an argument which must have started outside of the tent already “You can’t just want to do nothing?! What good does an inside-man, if we do not use his information?” she seethed in a raised tone.

Lexa seemed to completely ignore the other and quickly unbuckled her shoulder pauldron discarding the armour and her red sash carelessly on the floor of the tent.

Anya watched on in confusion as Lexa disguised herself with a dark scarf and pushed one into Clarke’s hands as well. She wondered just what Bellamy must have conveyed to Skykru.

“We must do something!” Clarke raged just holding the scarf in her hands, her face showing her inner turmoil.

“What is going on?” Anya asked confused, still keeping her arms around Marie protectively.

Lexa turned to her former mentor “Mount Weather is sending a missile to TonDC” she said, voice heavy, but expression void of any emotion.

Anya’s eyes widened. She had not seen the effects of such a weapon first-hand, but she had been told from the elders in her village, that the last time Mount Weather had launched one, it had left a whole in the woods too wide to even see the edge. It clicked immediately in her mind, that Lexa had obviously not commanded the evacuation of TonDC, as Clarke was apparently expecting, but was planning to slip away with the other leader undetected. The realization of all these people dying as an effect of the missile weighed heavy in her mind, but as a strategist she could only agree with Lexa’s decision, no matter how hard the losses would be. Their ability to win against the Mountain largely relied on Bellamy’s success, using his information to warn everyone would probably reveal to the Mountain Men that a spy had infiltrated them.

“But…” Clarke tried again, her desperation rising obviously.

The commander whirled around to her “What do you want me to do Clarke? Has Bellamy disabled the acid fog? Has he uncaged my sleeping army?” when the blonde woman shook her head reluctantly, the commander continued “You have not said anything about the missile even to your own people. You know that this is the only choice to make. You have shown great strength today, don’t let emotions cloud your mind now. We must slip away now.”

Marie had backed away slightly from Anya, looking back and forth between the commander and Anya with wide frightened eyes.

“A fire…” the girl mumbled suddenly, too low for the commander to catch her words, while Lexa tried to urge Clarke to leave immediately.

“What?” Anya asked the girl lowly, looking at Marie intently.

“Starting a fire would make the people go into the woods or gather water from the stream” Marie reasoned in a calm tone, that still had a shaken edge to it.

Lexa had turned from Clarke abruptly and listened to Marie’s words as well.  “Would a fire spread fast enough?” the commander turned to Anya, who was more familiar with the buildings around TonDC.

 The older woman thought about the possibility for a second and then nodded her head in agreement “You should retreat to the woods nevertheless. But be careful, we encountered two from Mountain Men in the woods on our hunt.”

Lexa was struck uncomfortably with the fact, that her former mentor did not even for a second seem to think about leaving, before anyone else did.

A worried glance at the girl still leaning against her, told the commander that the woman cared more for the girl surviving the attack than for her own survival.

“Let Gustus help you” Lexa suggested “And be quick about it”. The commander was strangely reluctant to leave her former mentor behind, now that she was faced with her.

The woman nodded and gently pushed Marie in Lexa’s direction, her brown eyes almost pleading with the commander to take the girl with her to safety.

Marie looked back at the general with grey wide eyes, realizing that Anya had no intention of accompanying them into the woods, but rather causing the fire herself with Gustus. She wanted to argue with them, that she would not leave without Anya, but neither of the two women seemed inclined to listen to her input at the moment.

Lexa inclined her head to Anya, a silent understanding passing between them, before she quickly retrieved another scarf to hide the girl’s conspicuous hair, throwing the scarf around Marie’s head quickly.

She pulled the girl with her out of the tent, not giving her the chance to speak up at all, the child’s expression had clearly portrayed her reluctance to leave without Anya.

Clarke followed them almost reluctant, while Anya had picked up Marie’s dagger and put it into her coat to hopefully return it to their charge later. She quickly briefed Gustus on what to do and they set to work.

Lexa urged Marie and Clarke to leave TonDC faster, without attracting attention to them. They did not know just when the Mountain Men would send their missile and she knew that they needed to get as far away as possible.

When the blonde Skykru leader stopped suddenly behind them, Lexa turned and noticed with a grimace what must have made her stop. Clarke’s mother was walking through TonDC and Clarke hurried back to her.

Lexa called behind the other loudly, but was ignored. With a curse under her breath, the commander halted her steps, pulling Marie to stay close to her.

In the middle of TonDC, she could suddenly see smoke rising in the air, indicating that Anya and Gustus had put their plan into action. It took only a few moments, before others had noticed the smoke as well and people started to swarm out into the woods.

Lexa anxiously watched the sky that had started to turn dark for any signs of a missile. She knew that only moments would pass between seeing the signs of the missile and the impact.

A moment later the horses had been released from the meadow, they had been kept on and stormed away from TonDC. The smoke had become thicker, indicating that the fire was spreading quickly. Lexa knew that the few buildings which had remained from the world before the bombs would probably not burn well. But these buildings had served as a centre for TonDC and wooden structures had been erected around them and as the village had grown, they had started to build closer to other buildings leaving next to no free space between them and the wooden structures would all burn well, once they had caught fire.

The commander thought that she already knew why the Mountain Men chose to use a missile now after so many years. Before she formed the coalition, there had always been war between the clans, some smaller alliances had existed but nothing permanent, leaving all of them vulnerable and weak and unable to face the Mountain. Now that they had banded together, their combined strength must pose a very real threat to the Mountain. Killing all of their leaders with just one attack, would warrant that their attention turned away from the Mountain again to resume waring with each other, making them weak once again.

“What about all of those that don’t leave?” Marie suddenly asked in a timid voice. The girl no real idea, what damage a missile would do, but she had seen what the relatively small explosive had done to the bridge where Tris had been killed.

Lexa looked at the girl, who still looked visibly shaken and pale “Everyone who escaped from the fire will be save from the missile” she answered. There was no way of predicting how many would have left TonDC by the time of the impact, but she knew that every life saved, was one potential warrior more in her army.

The commander watched on as Clarke practically pulled her mother away from TonDC and into the treeline, when suddenly the missile appeared on the dark sky.

Marie’s eyes widened and all seemed to happen in slow motion. The girl sucked in a harsh breath and anxiously watched the missile’s flaming path over the night sky, until it exploded only a short moment later.

The force of the explosion swept both of them from their feet and Marie’s ears ringed painfully.

Everything seemed to stand still for a few seconds until Marie heard muffled screams through the ringing in her ears.

She barely felt it, when Lexa pulled her back to her feet a few seconds later, having recovered earlier from the impact.

Marie could see many people running through the trees. Some were still fleeing away from the site of the explosion, while others tried to get back to the smouldering ruins which once were TonDC. It shocked her to see just how much had been destroyed by the missile, she doubted that even a single building would have remained standing without damage. Her thoughts immediately went to Anya, praying silently in her head, that the general had not been in the centre of the impact.

In a slight distance, they could see Clarke trying to talk with her mother, who just turned away from her with judging eyes and Clarke crying a single tear.

Lexa’s mind raced as she analysed, that the Skykru chancellor had obviously concluded that her daughter had been aware of the missile. This could end in possible disaster if word got out. 

The remnants of TonDC were burning and screams and sounds of despair carried over to them. Lexa closed her eyes tightly for a second, absorbing the pain and death of her people. The time between the fire and the missile’s impact had not been long enough, for all of the people to flee into the woods. But the commander knew that staying so close to TonDC was dangerous.

Clarke had explained that the Mountain Men needed, what she had called a spotter to aim their missile, if they would see her and Clarke, she feared they would only send a second missile and more people would die, as some had already started to run back to TonDC to look for survivors.

When Lexa saw Clarke following her mother, who had run back to TonDC with unsteady steps, she quickly ordered Marie to stay put and hurried behind Clarke.

The blonde leader was clearly in shock and only responded to her after a few tries, muttering that she had failed constantly under her breath.

“Victory stands on the back of sacrifice” Lexa said to her in an urgent tone, green eyes hard and unyielding “And we have to move, if they see us, they will strike again.”

The blonde leader nodded after a few seconds coming out of her daze, when suddenly shots rang out through TonDC.

“The spotter. He is alone” Clarke said, already moving in the direction of where the shots came from.

The commander motioned Marie to follow Clarke, but Lexa stopped the blonde leader momentarily “If he sees us and reports to the Mountain…”

Clarke interrupted her with an angry glint in her blue eyes “He won’t because I will kill him beforehand.”

The defiance in Clarke’s blue eyes, silenced the commander and she merely nodded.

“What about Anya?” Marie meekly asked Lexa, looking back at TonDC with worried grey eyes. It was apparent that the child wished to search for her mentor.

Lexa shook her head “I hope she is alright. But we cannot return to TonDC, before the spotter is gone.”

“Can’t I search for her?” Marie almost pleaded, moving in the direction of TonDC slightly.

“No” Lexa said with finality, pulling the girl behind Clarke forcefully.

They walked through the dark forest in silence for a few minutes.

Lexa tried to reason with Clarke that they had done the right thing and that killing the spotter for revenge would not make her feel better.

Silently Marie thought, she could absolutely agree with the last part. The girl’s breathing quickened slightly, when the Mountain Man she had killed re-appeared in front of her eyes, his blood spraying over her again.

Lexa turned around to Marie having picked up on the girl’s distress and grabbed her shoulders, harsher than intended “Focus!” she addressed the girl in a sharp tone, giving her a slight shake.

Marie tried to stop her panic and nodded slightly, when suddenly Lexa whirled around again as footsteps sounded in front of them.

The commander grabbed for one of her swords, but lowered it again only a moment later.

The footsteps belonged to Lincoln, who was obviously surprised to see them here. But before the man could say anything, Gustus and Anya joined them as well.

Lexa felt relive curse through her veins, while Marie instantly ran over to the woman, hugging Anya tightly and making the woman wince slightly from the pain of her healing wound.

“The fire was no coincidence, wasn’t it?” Lincoln asked in a cautious voice.

The commander thought of her options for a moment, before she inclined her head in agreement.

Shots rang out again and Lincoln told them that the survivors of the explosion were trapped by the sniper. They set off together to take him down.

 

Chapter 54

Searching for the sniper took way longer than Marie expected. She had thought that they would locate the single man quickly, but such a thought had obviously been foolish of her.

The sun was already rising behind the mountains behind TonDC.

The shock of the previous evening had worn off and Marie now only felt empty and drained. Keeping up with the others became more strenuous with every additional step uphill. She had no experience with climbing a mountain and the exhaustion of the previous day had caught up with her, making her legs feel like heavy blocks. She would have proposed to wait where they stood on her own, if she was not aware that neither Anya nor the commander would agree to such a foolish idea.

Behind them, smoke still rose into view in a big black cloud from the remnants of TonDC.

Marie could see the commander looking down onto TonDC with regret flashing through her green eyes. The girl silently wondered, why the commander had not just evacuated TonDC the moment Clarke told her of the missile, that way more lives could have been saved.

She had just opened her mouth to ask Anya, when suddenly a bullet hit a rock directly behind her, chipping off some small slivers.

Gustus had positioned himself in front of Lexa immediately and pushed the commander to seek cover behind a mountain ledge.

Anya quickly pushed the startled girl down as well to make her a smaller target and almost hauled the girl behind the mountain ledge.

Marie was blinking up at her with wide eyes, flicking between the small slivers of stone and the general in clear shock.

“So much for the element of surprise…” Anya commented almost snarky. It had taken way too long for her liking to find the spotter from Mount Weather.

They needed to return to TonDC as soon as possible, to help the survivors and the commander needed to be seen by their people, before chaos broke out. She knew how quickly the absence of a leader could cause unrest between the armies of the different clans. The clans would begin to struggle for power amongst themselves at the first opportunity.

Clarke suddenly started to fire her gun at the spotter, giving Lincoln the opportunity to approach the spotter unharmed.

Anya also slipped away to come at the man from his backside. She had to admit that the disguise of the spotter perfectly blended into the woods. If she had merely been on patrol and the man had kept still, she highly doubted she would have noticed his presence at all.

Marie had stayed back with the commander, Gustus standing in front of the woman protectively.

The girl watched with a baited breath, as Lincoln pinned the spotter to the ground, holding a dagger to his throat, when the man suddenly had a small device in his hand which emitted a shrill noise, making Lincoln drop his dagger and clutch at his head as if in pain.

Clarke still her gun pointed at the spotter and looked ready to shoot, when the spotter easily overpowered Lincoln and threatened to kill him, should Clarke not lower her weapon.

The man had not noticed Anya rounding up on him from behind and his face morphed into a shocked grimace, when suddenly a sword protruded from his chest.

Anya ripped her bloodied sword out of his body with one quick movement and then man fell to his knees in the grass, clutching at the whole in his chest.

Marie watched on emotionally unattached as the man’s eyes became glassy, he had bled out only a short moment later.

“We need to get back” Lexa said, breaking their stupor. The commander knew that it would not take long for the parts of the army that had camped a few hours away from TonDC to make their way to the ruins. They all needed to see, that she had survived.

The way back to TonDC seemed even longer to Marie, although they were travelling downhill now, they had walked several hours the last night and had to return the whole way.

She was both deeply relieved and shocked, when they finally reached TonDC. The missile had completely destroyed the village, but what surprised her even more, was that several members of Skykru were there helping to dig out survivors out of collapsed buildings.

Lincoln had spotted Octavia with the others seconds trying to pull a heavy piece of rumble away and quickly run to her. Both of them hugged enthusiastically and kissed.

Others had spotted the arrival of the commander by now and chanting of “Heda” resonated through TonDC, as all of the grounders stopped what they were doing to acknowledge that their commander had survived the attack.

Lexa pulled her hand up in the air and the crowd hushed immediately.

Anya let her eyes quickly roam over the gathered crowd and thought that many more would have been lost without the deliberate fire and she squeezed Marie’s shoulders gently, while the girl let herself tiredly lean against Anya’s strong frame.

The commander spotted a few deceased people between the ruins, but filed that away for later when she would know the exact numbers of the losses. “What happened today will not stand” Lexa loudly addressed her people “The Mountain will fall. Our dead will be avenged!”

Shouts of affirmation could be heard through the crowd, as they cheered. Abby suddenly spoke up that there were still people buried alive and that they had to start getting them out. Lexa looked slightly annoyed at the older woman but let her insolence pass turning to Clarke with determination in her eyes “With both our people working together, we will win this war.”

Clarke nodded although it was obvious guilt was already weighing her down, seeing the effects of the missile now.

“Everyone joining the attack will leave now to join up with the army already camped in the vicinity of the Mountain” Lexa added.

The blonde nodded, knowing that she would be joining the commander, she would need to be there for the war meetings.

Lexa looked to Anya and Marie. The girl looked to be asleep on her feet and leant against Anya, but letting her stay here in TonDC was not an option. Gaining her first kill had definitely given the girl the right to join in the attack against the Mountain.

Clarke asked, if Lexa could spare some people to help hers gather the wounded to the Ark, where they had better equipment to help heal them.

The commander quickly organized, what would be needed and watched as Clarke said her goodbyes to her mother. The older woman worried her slightly, it was obvious that she knew that she had not given the orders to evacuate TonDC despite having the information of the impending missile and she did not trust her to keep silent entirely. She did not know if silencing her permanently would null their alliance.

Indra had stepped up to the commander and Lexa noted with slight worry, that the general was wounded as well.

The sniper had shot at her and the bullet had pierced right through the other woman’s shoulder. The steeliness in the dark-skinned woman’s eyes was unchanged and there was no talking sense into her to stay behind at least for a day or two.

Of course, as the commander she could have just ordered Indra to stay or accompany Skykru to have her injurie properly treated, but she knew that the woman would take such as a personal insult, so she had the wounded general join the procession of warriors who all wanted to join up with the army.

The way to the army’s camp site was long and they travelled through the whole night.

Marie had never before felt more exhausted, she was only working on auto-pilot, blindly stumbling behind Anya and Lexa. Her legs seemed to have lost feeling all together and the girl wished for nothing more than a horse to carry her weight. But Marie did not complain aloud once, knowing that everyone was walking on foot and no one would be able to offer her any help.

Anya had to forcefully keep a pained grimace from her face. The still healing injury on her abdomen gave a painful throb with every step she took. She was used to the exertion of a long march, but her body was still weakened and she felt that with every passing moment. 

Lexa looked to be deep in thought, same as Clarke. But Lexa had a calculating expression on her face, as if she might mentally be planning their next steps in this war, whereas Clarke had a look of a mixture between defeated and defiant on her face.

“What did “marrow treatment” mean?” Anya suddenly addressed Clarke, who visibly startled. The warrior had caught the phrase spoken between Clarke and her mother before, but she was unfamiliar with the meaning.

“It is a medical procedure with bone marrow” Clarke explained.

“Bone marrow” Anya repeated the unfamiliar words, as if to get a taste of them.

Clarke tried to explain to the general, how stem cells derived from bone marrow could be used to transfer cells and their phenotypes into another body.

Anya’s brows furrowed in mounting confusion, she could distinctly imagine what the blonde girl meant but the concept was alien to her. She had been shocked already to see the Mountain use their blood as medicine. “How do you get that?” Anya asked next, avoiding using the word “harvest” as she had heard Clarke call the room the Mountain Men had kept her and the other warriors in.

“You can extract it from the hip bone by drilling into it” Clarke answered.

From the corner of her eye, Anya could see Lexa following the conversation with obvious interest.

One more question struck in her mind “How much marrow can you extract from a body?” she voiced her thoughts. She wondered why the Mountain Men had not already used their own people as a resource in such a fashion. She hoped that the Mountain Men would not succeed in their goal, or they would be faced with them on the ground soon.

“That depends on many factors” Clarke answered thinking hard to remember the medical lessons she had had with her mother “Health, body size and other factors influence that. And age is a huge drawback. They could get more or rather stem cells with a higher potency out of … for example Marie in comparison to me.”

Anya silently processed the words she had just heard “And this treatment makes it possible for them to breathe our air?”

Clarke nodded with a sad expression in her eyes “That the sniper was not wearing a hazmat suite proves that.”

The conversation halted, when Clarke’s face fell. Even though she had no definite proof, she knew that the Mountain Men must be killing her friends one by one to cure themselves. Ironically, Clarke thought that many people from the Ark would have been willing to donate stem cells, if asked and in exchange for shelter or aid. But the Mountain Men had chosen their path and she would stop at nothing to rescue her friends from their greedy clutches.

When finally, they met the first scouts around the army’s camp, Marie nearly collapsed to her knees, relief clearly written on her face.

The scouts’ relief at spotting the commander herself leading the group was palpable in the air. They spoke of unrest in the army’s camp. All of them had seen the missile soaring through the night sky from the Mountain and obviously the Azgeda delegation had already joined up with the army spreading news of the commander’s supposedly death. Chaos had taken root in the camp and the different clans had directly been at each other’s throats.

The scout Lexa heard the report from, a young man barely older than fifteen winters, told her that the generals who had made it back to the army’s camp were holding a meeting in the commander’s tent to decide how to move on now.

The commander angrily gritted her teeth, she could almost imagine the disappointment of some of her generals at discovering her survival.

Lexa urged the group on faster, eager to end the meeting her generals were having without her attendance. She feared they might just decide to march on the Mountain like that or attack Trikru. Most of the Trikru army had been stationed nearer to TonDC and all generals of Trikru travelled with her in this group at the moment. Trikru had suffered the most losses through the missile, she knew that without exact numbers, but it would make those who had survived, fight all the harder to avenge those that had been lost to Mountain.

Marie obviously had trouble keeping up with the increased pace, but she urged her body to somehow dig out more energy from her reserves.

The warriors who saw them approaching immediately started chanting Lexa’s title in reverent voices. From the tent intended for the commander, shouts flittered through the tent’s material.

Lexa did not even wait a heartbeat and stormed into the tent with purposeful strides.

The faces of the generals as they whirled around to the intruder were almost comical in their obvious shock.

Lexa carefully let her eyes scan over all of the assembled generals noting who looked genuinely relieved to see her and who barely managed to hide their displeasure.

Only three generals stood out among the others, the Azgeda general was among them which did not surprise the commander at all.

She glared at all of them for having the audacity to believe in her death without proof and trying to plan a war without a real commander. The general’s squirmed under her icy glare and when one opened his mouth to say something, the commander silenced him with a simple wave of her hand, simultaneously dismissing all of them for now.

After the generals had slowly filed out of the tent, a handmaid immediately entered the tent with a tray of food and drinks.

Marie briefly wondered if Alira had survived the missile, but no one knew at the moment who had died. The girl sat down at the table, feeling her legs tingle weirdly and gingerly ate a piece of soft bread. She had not noticed how hungry she had been. Marie did not notice as she became more tired with each second and she had stopped registering what happened around her altogether.

Anya watched as the girl started to fall asleep, still chewing slightly on a bit of bread. The woman snorted and went to wake the girl up, but Lexa stopped her.

Clarke had been assigned a tent and Ryder had taken up post outside of the commander’s tent relieving Gustus from his duty for now to rest.

“Let her sleep” Lexa said in a soft voice, carefully testing the movement of her shoulder. The injury barely hurt anymore, a day or two more and she would be healed.

Anya also looked exhausted and Lexa gently hoisted the sleeping girl into her arms, carrying her over to the part of the tent reserved for sleeping and sat her down on some soft furs.

The girl did not even stir at the jostlement and stayed asleep through it.

“It does not do for us to stay in your tent forever, Lexa” Anya said with thinned lips, having followed the commander’s movements with her eyes.

The commander shook her head again “It does for now. And I am sure she won’t be sleeping for long.”

Anya nodded. She had already feared that new nightmares would hunt their charge now, after her first kill, even Lexa had suffered from them for a few months. 

Previously in chapter 54

They meet Anya, Gustus and Lincoln during their search for the sniper, who is then killed. TonDC is destroyed by the missile and Skykru have come to help the survivors. The commander leads the warriors from TonDC to join up with her army accompanied by Clarke.

 

Chapter 55

Anya was mostly grateful to finally be off her feet. She hoped that the insistently pulsing pain in her abdomen would recede, once she had gotten some rest through the night.

And Lexa was proven correct, only a few hours later. Marie had slept for a few hours due to her bone deep exhaustion, but soon her sleep was disturbed by images of blood spraying on her hands and the shock in the eyes of the Mountain Man, as he had bled out on the forest floor. In her dreams the images were contorted slightly and she was not only seeing the man bleed out like that, but Anya as well, shot down by the Mountain Men’s guns.

Anya had fallen asleep only a few moments prior, when Marie started trashing in terror under her furs.

The commander still had made a round through the huge camp of the army, making a point of visiting each clan’s delegation at least shortly and had just returned back into the tent, when the nightmares began.

Lexa placed her sword on a table in front of the sleeping area of the tent and crouched down next to the girl trying to rouse her gently. As soon as her fingers made contact with the girl’s shoulders, Marie’s grey eyes popped open and she shot upright from the furs, nearly knocking Lexa over, colliding with her head painfully.

“Au” Marie gasped, her eyes still wide breathing heavily as she gingerly felt at her head.

“It is ok” Lexa soothed in a gentle tone waiting until her charge’s grey eyes regained some focus.

Marie looked down at her hands and started to scratch at them almost violently, the feeling of the warm blood coating them still fresh in her mind and she could still see the dried blood on her skin.

Lexa quickly enveloped the child’s smaller hands into her own and by thus stopped the frantic scratching. “Stop hurting yourself, Marie” Lexa ordered in an even tone, her green eyes fixed on the girl who looked even smaller right now.

The commander encased the girl in her arms, pulling her thin frame against her chest and rocking her in a slight soothing motion.

Marie was tense the first few moments in Lexa’s arms, before she let herself relax sheltered in the woman’s reassuring warmth.

After long moments of silence, Marie had calmed and eased out of the embrace, peering up at Lexa with huge eyes, glistening with moisture “Do you ever forget?” she asked in a quivering tone.

Lexa knew exactly, what the girl was asking about. But she shook her head, with a slight sigh. She would like to ease the child’s mind, but she did not believe that lying would aid her truly, no matter how harsh the truth might be. She still remembered her own first kill vividly. The memory would pop up in her mind sometimes unbidden at random moments.

The memory flashed through her mind again now. She had been younger than Marie was now, barely seven summers old. She had disobeyed Anya’s clear orders and strayed too far in the direction of the Mountain. She had run into a Reaper and without any further thought, she had barged at the Reaper. She had survived the fight against the Reaper. She still remembered, how she had driven the sword through the Reaper’s stomach. Lexa would forever remember the eyes of the Reaper clearing momentarily of their insanity in the last moments before his death. Anya had found her after some time. She had been in too much shock, to move away from the dead Reaper, sitting beside the corpse forlornly, sword clutched in her numb hands.

The commander still remembered that day clearly, but the memory had lost its cutting edges over time slowly. She gently swiped a stray lock of blonde hair from the girl’s face “No, you will never forget that moment. But you will learn to accept that death is a vital part of being a warrior.”

Marie stayed silent, but she was biting at her lips with her face scrunched up, obviously still troubled.

“You did not attack the Mountain Man just to kill him, did you?” Lexa asked Marie intently, to steer her from her silent musing.

Marie shook her head vehemently and her voice shook notably “He was aiming at Anya with his gun and she had not seen him…So, I wanted to …”

“Protect her. Am I right?” Lexa suggested in a soft tone.

The girl nodded immediately “I didn’t even think. I just attacked him …” Marie looked miserable, as if what she had done was a great sin and she looked down at her knees, averting her eyes with trembling lips. She seemed to be on the verge of breaking into tears again.

“Look at me, Marie” Lexa admonished, directing the girl’s chin up gently to re-connect their eyes “You may have saved Anya’s life by doing so, Marie. The most of our fights are fought to protect those we love.”

Marie seemed to contemplate Lexa’s words, before she nodded with a cautious expression.

Lexa silently wondered if Marie would have fought as hard for her own life. It sounded as if Marie had surprised the soldier from the Mountain and she doubted her fighting skills would have been enough to save her had the situation been different.

When the girl started to yaw again after a few moments, Lexa gently pushed the girl back down on her furs. They all needed more rest. The signal that Bellamy had succeeded in dismantling the acid fog could come any moment now.

Tomorrow morning, they would hold a last meeting with all the generals to speak through the finer details of the plan. Lexa doubted that the plan Clarke had taken such pains to come up with would hold long into the battle. Plans never lasted long into battle. Every battle had a dynamic of its own, it was completely impossible to accurately predict the way in which your opponent would react. And it was impossible to come up with enough small details and backup plans to cover all possible scenarios.

The commander shrugged out of the light armour she had been wearing and also laid down to rest a bit. She felt the girl’s eyes watching her every move, until she laid down and with an almost inaudible sigh, Lexa lifted her furs for the girl to slip under.

It was obvious their charge was afraid to fall back asleep now. It took Marie only a few moments to leap over and snuggle up to the commander, letting out a contented sigh when she had wiggled into a comfortable position. Lexa silently wondered, when it had become routine for the small girl to seek shelter with her in the night and why she did not mind the fact at all. Her previous second had never sought comfort from her in such a fashion and the nightbloods did seldom, Titus being quick to instil proper manners and decorum into them.

The rest of the night went over quickly and fortunately without any further disturbances. They had all gotten some rest and Anya was relived to note that the pain from the wound had subdued almost completely. Constant sounds of movements in the large army camp around them filtered through the thin material of the tent.

Marie smiled happily at Alira when the handmaid brought breakfast into the commander’s tent, glad to see that the woman had survived the bombing of TonDC.

A messenger was waiting for the commander to be granted an audience, bringing news from TonDC. But Lexa told Gustus, who had already taken up his post at the entrance of the tent together with Ryder, to let the man wait to give her some time to get presentable again.

The girl had washed up and dressed again while Anya sat down behind Lexa, gently combing out the commander’s thick brown locks.

Marie was munching on a slice of bread with some white mild cheese, when Anya started to weave new braids into Lexa’s hair. “Just like old times” the older woman said with a slight tease in her voice.

“Feel yourself honoured” Lexa shot right back, in a serious tone and calm expression.

Marie cocked her head to the side obviously confused “Is it an honour to braid your hair, Lexa?” she inquired, openly curious.

“Letting someone close enough to braid your hair is a gesture of tremendous trust. You turn your back to the other and literally bare your throat” Anya answered the innocent question in an even tone.

“Usually family or lovers braid each other’s hair” Lexa added remembering Costia’s fingers in her hair.

Marie nodded, obviously thinking the new information through, before she exclaimed with a scrunched brow “But you and Lexa always braid my hair. We are not family…” The girl’s words trailed off and it was obvious to both women that the girl clearly wished it was otherwise.

“The bond between a second and a first is considered to be a familial bond “Anya provided with a gentle smile on her strong features. It was next to impossible to not develop a strong bond with your second, as you spent years with each other in close proximity.

“So, I could braid your hair?” Marie pressed on in a curious tone, grey eyes inquiring.

Anya snorted lightly in reaction, at which the smile fell from Marie’s face again.

“You can theoretically braid our hair, yes. But you are lacking the ability to do so. We share a sleeping space. There is no greater sign of trust, Marie” Lexa appeased the girl and with a mischievous glint in her green eyes added “But I am sure, Anya would be glad to let you practice some with her hair.”

Anya’s lips thinned, glaring at Lexa for a moment, before she let out an annoyed huff and affirmed to Marie that she was welcome to practice some on her. She could always quickly replace the braids again later, if the girl’s attempt were a failure.

Marie smiled brightly at the prospect and waited almost impatiently for Anya to finish with Lexa’s hair and the commander motioned the girl over to sit down behind Anya.

The older woman had taken a mug with steaming tea and had obviously resigned herself to just sit patiently and wait.

Lexa watched on in mute amusement as Marie started on Anya’s hair.

The girl was extremely gentle with the comb trying to untangle Anya’s locks without pulling at them, as if she was avoiding at all costs to even cause the woman a little pain.

“You can pull harder at the comb or you will never get through the hair at all until nightfall” Anya suddenly remarked, annoyance obvious in her clipped tone.

Marie startled slightly, when Anya spoke up and let go of the comb completely.

Lexa stifled a snort at the girl’s skittishness.

Cautiously, Marie continued with more force behind the strokes and had the hair detangled after a short amount of more time.

Lexa had already eaten a quick breakfast and now sat down next to the girl, showing her how to weave a simple braid. After braiding a thick strand through to the tips, Lexa loosened the braid again and now watched on carefully as Marie tried.

It was painfully obvious the girl had never braided any kind of braids until now. The girl needed a few tries to even get a simple three-stranded braid correctly without losing part of the braids halfway. 

Lexa had to silently give credit to Anya for remaining this calm and patient as the woman was. The commander still vividly remembered the first few times Anya had let her braid her mentor’s hairs. The woman had been impatient and had her re-do the design over and over again, nearly driving her crazy in the process.

It took Marie pretty long to finish the relatively simple design Anya usually had braided into her hair. But the girl was grinning proudly, when Lexa finally proclaimed the braids to be satisfactory for now.

Anya carefully let her finger glide over the braids under the watchful eyes of their charge. They were uneven at times and they would probably not hold through the next night, but they would do.

Something must have shown on her face, as Marie’s shoulders had dropped slightly and the girl said in a sad voice “You do not like them?!” a pout settled on her lips.

Anya could see Lexa fighting a losing battle against the grin on her face and she glared slightly at the younger woman, the whole situation was her fault after all. “They are fine for your first attempt, Marie” she tried to placate the girl who obviously caught on with that and crossed her arms over her chest a scowl on her face.

Anya gritted her teeth in annoyance she wasn’t used to dealing with a child this sensitive. “You did really fine for your first attempt” Anya repeated with conviction in her tone and added with a devilish glare at Lexa “And Lexa had to re-do my braids more often than you did the first time she tried.”

The commander just acknowledged her words with a slight eye roll, as she had only been listening to their conversation with most of her attention being focused on the maps in front of her. A perimeter had been defined for the army and scouts had carefully outlined how far the acid fog of the Mountain really reached and all members of the army had strict orders not to cross that line.

Both women did not deem it necessary to explain to Marie that Lexa’s first attempts at braiding Anya’s hair had been done to perfection, but of course she already had previous experience with braiding her own hair, making a direct comparison slightly unfair.

In no time at all, Anya now had braided Marie’s hair again which had become lose due to her tossing under the furs in the previous night. An almost melancholic look crossed over the older woman’s face while her fingers braided the familiar braids into the blonde hair. She had lost count of the times, she had weaved the exact same braids into Lexa’s hair who had only adopted a more intricate pattern of braids after her accession to command.

Finally, the messenger was granted entry into the commander’s tent.

The survivors who had remained in TonDC had mostly cleared the ruins of those who had died on the impact of the missile. They had counted eighty-six corpses and a few had been brought to the Skykru’s camp to be treated for severe wounds.

Lexa nodded with an unreadable expression and dismissed the messenger again, grinding her teeth together.

She knew that the death count would have been even higher if not for Marie’s last-minute idea to start a fire. But losing so many without a real battle was still a heavy blow and the area would surely need aid from Polis in the upcoming winter to bring the survivors through the harsher months of winter without stocked supplies.

Marie had become slightly paler hearing the actual number and Anya had looked mostly angry.

The commander knew that most of her warriors would even be spurred on to fight harder against the Mountain now after this recent blow.

 

 

Chapter 56

The army camp was already bustling with activity when the commander led them outside of the big tent.

Every warrior who spotted the commander cheered and bowed to her offering their respect.

Lexa acknowledged them all by inclining her head in a faint nod, taking her time to walk through the camp.

Marie was awed to watch this show of respect and spotting differences between some of the armour the warriors were wearing, told her that these soldiers were mixed together from all different clans.

Gustus and Ryder were walking closely behind Lexa in case there was an assassin hidden between the warriors, which was sadly always a possibility for the commander. But no one seemed to harbour any ill will against the commander, at the moment and the whole atmosphere in the camp buzzed with excitement and Lexa dearly hoped that Bellamy would quickly succeed in disabling the acid fog. Feeding that many warriors in one place, was putting a heavy strain on the wild life in the woods around them and the atmosphere in the camp could change quickly, when they had to wait too long, giving enough time for discontent to simmer. She knew all too well how quickly the warriors off different clans jammed together in a camp, could start fighting over the simplest dispute.

Lexa led them to the small free space in the middle of the camp where some older warriors were overseeing their seconds sparring with each other, shouting critics at them occasionally.

Marie gulped nervously when she caught up with the commander’s intention. All of the second she could see training, looked to at least be fifteen and older and all were at least a head taller than her.

 Anya barely concealed a snort at the look of doubt on the young girl’s face.

Marie looked pleadingly back and forth between Lexa and Anya, silently trying to ask them to let her pass this training, but both completely ignored her mute pleas.

The commander nudged the girl in the direction of the free space with a hand against her shoulder, so that Marie stumbled slightly.

Indra who had been watching Octavia spar with a second from the desert clan had stepped up to the commander and Anya, and addressed both of them in a mocking tone “Your second looks ready to bolt the second someone attacks her”.

“Is that so?” Anya drawled in a bored tone “I am sure she would hold her ground against your second”.

Marie turned around to Anya with widened eyes, horror flashing over her features momentarily, having listened on to the conversation.

When the dark-skinned general suddenly started to laugh out loud, Marie clenched her jaw in silent anger.

Octavia had obviously finished her match with the other second and joined her mentor, waiting silently for more orders.

Indra inclined her head towards Marie “Your next opponent and make it quick” she ordered.

Octavia looked at Marie with a furrowed brow “But she is just…” she started to argue, but trailed off quickly.

Indra stared down at her second, her grip tightening around her sword’s handle fury blazing in her dark eyes at being spoken back by her second in public like that.

Octavia seemed to have caught on with her error and lowered her head for a moment in a silent apology and then turned on Marie “Sorry, kid” the older girl said to Marie.

Lexa could see Marie looking around almost frantically.

Octavia had a blunted sword in her hand, while Marie was not armed yet.

Gustus offered another blunted sword to Marie, which the girl eyed cautiously. They had not progressed to sword training yet and Lexa doubted that the girl stood a real chance in this fight. It would still be telling to watch the girl’s instincts.

After hesitating for a brief moment, Marie took the sword from Gustus and turned back to Octavia who had waited patiently. Marie took on her protective stance and waited for Octavia to attack first.

 The older girl’s movements were brash and after a few minutes, Marie started to see a pattern in them which made her able to dodge the first attack.

But Marie was too inexperienced in fighting to react properly, when Octavia suddenly changed her tactic and lay all her strength into a single attack diving under the girl’s defences and hitting her with the pommel of her sword against her sternum.

Marie fell backwards landing on her back on the soft grass, gasping for air while her chest burned from the sharp impact. She did not think that Octavia had broken bones with her hit, but it hurt strongly.

Suddenly the girl heard someone shouting, but she was unable to understand the words with the pain blinding her other senses.

Clarke had barged into the ring of fighters having watched the match from the side-line.

When Octavia had hit Marie, the blonde worried that Octavia might have shattered Marie’s sternum with the impact of the pommel. “Are you fucking crazy?!” the blonde had screamed at Octavia, before anyone had reacted.

Indra and Anya were loudly arguing with Clarke now, while Lexa tried to calm all of them down.

Marie had used the time to gather back some breath and had gotten up again, gripping the sword in her hand strongly.

“Let them finish their fight” Lexa said bringing back the focus to Octavia and Marie. The commander nodded to them and guided Clarke back to the side-line to give the two seconds some more space.

“She could be seriously injured, Lexa” the blonde seethed at the commander.

Anya rolled her eyes “She will survive and become stronger” she exclaimed in a sharp tone.

Clarke whirled around to face the older woman, her eyes glaring daggers at her, but before she could say something she might regret, the sound of steel connecting forcefully with each other sounded loudly, signalling that both of them had taken up their fight again.

Marie was still panting slightly, pain blooming in her chest and she was sure a huge bruise would be forming already. Circling around the older girl, Marie tried to remember what both Lexa and Anya had told her, on how to beat someone clearly superior in strength. She could either try to wear Octavia down, but she doubted that would work, or she would need to get as close to her as possible to land a single hit against a sensitive spot.

“You can give up, you know” Octavia said after they had circled each other for some time, without any real attacks on both sides.

Indra seemed to growl from the side-line “Finish it!” her tone only an angry snarl.

Marie could see Octavia’s fingers tightening around the swords handle, getting ready to attack again and she crouched lower into her protective stance, waiting for the attack.

This time she let her defence drop on purpose, trying to lure Octavia closer to her body. The older girl immediately dived in to attack her and Marie used that to take a step closer, taking the blunt end of Octavia’s sword painfully against her ribs, but simultaneously Marie used her own sword to hit Octavia’s throat as strong as she could.

The other girl clearly had not anticipated that move and she fell to her knees gasping and coughing for air.

Indra seemed to be completely floored and her mouth opened in silent disbelief, while Anya looked smugly at the other woman.

“In a real fight both of them would be dead now” Lexa commented nonchalantly, but with a glint of pride in her green eyes. She had not anticipated the girl to fight that well and boldly. But it was true, faced against a sharp sword, Marie might have been able to kill Octavia with such a move, but she would also be bleeding out right now from the wound in her side.

Clarke had walked up to Octavia and seemed to inspect her throat for permanent damage.

Marie stepped up to them with a pained grimace on her face, tenderly touching her chest.

Anya smirked “Come, I am sure one of the healers will have an ointment for that” and directed the girl away.

“You fought well” the general said to the young girl on the way to a tent reserved to healers.

Marie’s smile was strained when she looked up at Anya, but her eyes seemed to glow with joy at the compliment.

“Do not get cocky now, Lexa is right, you would be bleeding out right now had you both fought with sharp swords” Anya cautioned.

Marie scowled slightly, but nodded in mute acknowledgement, she was still pleased with herself, she had been sure to lose against Octavia.

The healer did thankfully have an ointment against the bruising, which would enhance the healing and numb some of the pain.

A guard came to them when Marie followed Anya through the camp, relying a summon from Lexa to the commander’s tent. The Skykru delegation who would join them in the battle had reached their camp and Lexa intended to hold the last war meeting now, so that Anya’s presence was required.

The tent was stuffed with people, when they entered.

Marie looked around and noticed that she seemed to be the only second in the tent as the others apart from Skykru were all older and probably generals from the different clans. She wondered silently if she should be waiting outside, but Anya had not told her to wait, so she was probably allowed to listen.

Marie frowned, when Clarke was motioned to speak first. Her plan sounded off and way too optimistic. The blonde woman had obviously planned to only rescue her friends and execute the leaders of the Mountain Men and to spare all the other inhabitants.

It was plainly obvious the generals were confused to receive such an order and Marie could see Anya’s brown eyes blazing with contained anger.

Lexa felt the atmosphere in the room shift the longer Clarke explained their plans. A heavy silence settled, once the blonde Skykru leader had finished her words.

Before the situation could get out of hand, Lexa stepped in taking place in the centre of the meeting, letting her eyes wander over all the faces of those gathered in the tent slowly and intently, before she spoke in a clear voice “The Mountain has cast a shadow over our lands for years now. Abducted our sons, daughters, brothers, sisters, fathers and mothers to use our blood or to turn our loved ones into monsters. We have lost thousand to them over all the years but these days end now! We will lay siege to the Mountain and avenge the ones we have lost! You have all heard our plan. We will rescue our people and free these lands of the Mountain forever. Have your warriors ready to attack at a moment’s notice as the signal to attack can come any moment now! When the acid fog is disabled, we will attack immediately and we will win this war! Until then…” Lexa paused for a moment and started chanting “Blood must have blood”.

The generals immediately joined her chant enthusiastically, thirsty for the blood of their greatest enemy.

It took some time for all the generals to finally leave the tent.

Clarke had followed the Skykru delegation to caution all of them with how to handle their guns personally.

The commander was aware that Skykru carrying guns was an advantage and simultaneously a huge liability. One wrong shot and her soldiers were bound to break into a panicked mass, the fear for these weapons too deeply ingrained in all of them.

Once Marie was alone again in the tent with Lexa and Anya, she worried her lips between her teeth. She had understood the general plan, but she had no idea where she would be during the battle and that worried her immensely. “Where will I be…?” the girl asked in a small voice, her last words too low to understand, but both women knew what their charge wanted to know nevertheless.

It was Lexa who turned to the girl and evenly said “You will be with me and Anya, as our second that is the place you are intended to be.”

Marie nodded with a small frown on her face, she was unsure if she should feel happy or excited to be part of the battle or if it was alright if the prospect only made fear bubble through her mind.

“Stay close to me at all times, no matter what” Anya addressed the girl, staring into her big grey eyes intently.

Marie nodded that she understood, but the worry was still evident in her young face.

“Were you afraid?” Marie asked after a few moments of silence.

Lexa inclined her head to their charge in question, not understanding what it was the girl implored after, so Marie explained “Of your first battle?”

Anya snorted slightly, her mind shortly flashing back to her own first real battle. She had barely seen fifteen summers back then, but she had been absolutely full of herself. The fear had only set in once the battle had started and she had to acknowledge that she was not as skilled as she had previously believed.

On the other hand, the older woman did also remember the first battle, she had fought together with Lexa and how the girl had voiced the same worry in the night before the immediate attack. “I wasn’t” Anya said, back in the present with her mind “But it is better if you are.”

Marie cocked her head to the side slightly unsure what her mentor meant, but Lexa now spoke softly “I had the same fears you are probably having right now. You are young, you will learn in time not to let your fears rule your decisions. As long as you keep close to us, you should be safe” The commander knew that she could not make a promise to the girl, that she could not fulfil as she had no intention of lying to their charge.

“Try to get some sleep” Lexa ordered and when the girl made to object, she added more sternly “That is not a plea, you need the rest for tomorrow.”

Marie nodded with slightly drooped shoulders, but Anya would join the girl now as the general also wanted to rest as much as possible, now that the battle could start at a moment’s notice.

Anya was already deep in slumber, while Marie still tried to calm her hammering heart some time later, when Clarke barged back into the tent wanting to speak through the plans of the battle with Lexa again.

The blonde obviously had doubts if their plan still had flaws they could prevent.

Marie could hear Lexa sighing, before she stopped Clarke’s rambling “Plans don’t last very long in battles, Clarke. Going over plans again and again is a waste of energy”.

Clarke’s voice was agitated when she answered “People died for this, Lexa, it has to work!”

“You are doing, what I did when I first took command” Lexa said in a calm tone “You cannot move forward and it is giving you too much time to think. Once Bellamy shuts down the acid fog and the battle begins, everything will be clear.”

“What if he can’t?” Clarke asked her voice laced with doubt “What if it was too dangerous and I sent him in there anyway.”

“You care about him” Lexa stated in a measured tone.

“I care about all of them” Clarke retorted forcefully.

Lexa remained unfazed “Then you worry about him more”

“I could not have kept us alive all this time without him” Clarke explained getting louder, Marie glanced to Anya, but the woman was still asleep and Clarke continued “We need him and now I might be the one who gets him killed.”

“That is what it means to be a leader Clarke” Lexa said more forcefully “The truth is, we must look into the eye of our warriors and say “Go, die for me””

“If only it were that easy” Clarke remarked with a frown “Can we please just get back to the plan”

“No” Lexa denied immediately “You could be a leader your people look to, pour their hopes and dreams into, someone they will fight and die for.”

“I never asked for that” Clarke retorted her voice sounding disgusted by the very idea “I am just trying to keep us alive.”

“You were born for this Clarke” the commander said after a moment of silence “Same as me”.

Not soon after, Clarke finally gave up speaking with Lexa and left the commander’s tent to get some rest herself.

Marie heard Lexa stepping through the tent for some minutes, before she shrugged out of her coat and joined them in the sleeping area.

The commander felt Marie’s eyes on her, the second she stepped behind the thin veil.

“You heard all that, didn’t you?” Lexa addressed the girl who was peering up at her with her huge grey eyes, filled with a storm of emotion.

Marie nodded while a thousand thoughts raced through her mind. The girl could hear the young woman sigh heavily and after a few moments of silence, Marie asked barely above a whisper “Will I have to die for you, too?”

Lexa felt her throat contracting painfully at the question voiced by the girl who still carried so much innocence. She had no intention of ever lying to their charge but she did not have it in her right now to be bluntly honest as well, so she settled for “Anya and I will protect you to the best of our abilities in the battle and you would not be considered a warrior yet, Marie.”

The words alone obviously were not enough to settle the girl’s worries, so Lexa offered the only other thing she could right now. She crouched down next to Marie’s furs and opened her arms, inviting the girl to hug her.

Marie hurled herself into Lexa’s open arms immediately, her small body shaking slightly from tears running down her cheeks, she had not been aware of. The commander enveloped the girl strongly and tried to sooth the upset child in her arms.

 

Chapter 57

The next three days trickled by awfully slowly.

The tension in the army camp was getting thicker with each hour that passed with waiting for the signal.

Marie could see that the generals and Lexa were getting anxious.

Clarke obviously feared that Bellamy had been detected, as they had lost contact with him some time ago now, but they were careful not to let word of that fact slip to the rest of the army.

The only one who did not seem to mind the wait very much was Anya. The woman had used the three days to rest mostly and Clarke had taken out her stitches a day ago, after which Anya had stormed to the training grounds immediately.

Clarke had been less than pleased with the headstrong general, but Anya had been unstoppable.

Marie had watched with worried eyes, how Anya immediately had challenged Indra to a fight. She had not been able to detect if Anya was fighting any less strongly or quickly in comparison to her time before she had been in the Mountain.

There was no clear winner in the friendly match, but luckily Anya’s injury had not broken open again, so Clarke had given her a free pass, knowing that the stubborn woman would not heed her advice to rest longer any way.

After the night she had listened to Lexa and Clarke talking, Marie had even more problems with sleeping. Hearing Lexa say out loud that being a leader meant to ask your warriors to die for them, had really driven home to the girl, that there was a very real possibility that she could die in the battle. She knew that Anya and Lexa could also fall, but she had never thought about her own death in that context before and she was afraid of the battle, deathly afraid at that now.

Both Anya and Lexa had no idea how to help their charge. They had both caught on to Marie’s sullen mood and even sleeping snuggled up to one of them, did not keep the girl’s nightmare away anymore.

The commander had asked Anya to keep the girl occupied for some time this morning as she intended to speak with Clarke in private.

Anya had of course agreed with a slight teasing remark concerning Lexa’s obvious growing concern for the blonde-haired leader. There seemed to be a telling tension growing between both leaders, Anya could only hope that Lexa knew, what she was doing in that regard.

The training grounds were crowed, when Anya led Marie away from the commander’s tent, so Anya led the girl in the opposite direction of the Mountain and into the woods.

The familiar sounds of the forest soothing Anya’s nerves immediately. The general was awkwardly antsy to return to the Mountain.

She tried to ask the girl about what she remembered about the plants surrounding them, which were edible and which to avoid. But it was obvious that the girl’s mind was elsewhere and her answers were delivered in a clipped tone, not even a hint of a smile on her features, a clear testament to her sour mood.

Anya huffed in annoyance, she was starting to doubt that the path of a warrior was the right one for the girl. “I dearly hope that you get your attitude in check when the battle begins” Anya rebuked the girl “Or you will place both, Lexa and me in danger, if we try to protect you.”

“I won’t be a liability” Marie said in a small voice, looking down at her feet.

The general sighed lowly “We have taught you enough that you won’t just stand in the way. But you are being overly difficult…”

Marie just furrowed her brow, but stayed silent.

A patch of beautiful flowers on the ground had caught her attention. They seemed to be affected by the radiation and glowed so strong, it was even visible in the soft daylight filtering through the trees surrounding them. She wondered minutely how they would look like in the darkness, but abandoned such thought. She realized with a sense of sadness, that someone must have stepped onto them carelessly, as some of the flowers were broken off, the petals already beginning to fall from the rest of the flowers.

Anya watched on with a slight frown, as the girl kneeled down in front of the flowers “They are quite beautiful, but their sight is even more fascinating in the dark” the woman commented.

“It is sad that someone destroyed them” the girl said in a forlorn tone and gently let her fingertips glide over the soft flowers.

Anya had to blink twice at what she saw right in front of her eyes.

The very second Marie had touched the first flower, the petals on the ground had somehow reattached to the stem of the flowers and they now stood unscathed again. The girl’s face was illuminated with a gentle smile and her fingers seemed to glow with a soft golden light, as the flowers seemed to bend slightly to meet the girl’s hands.

Anya had watched the proceedings with her mouth hanging open in silent shock and when the girl turned back around to her as if she just remembered Anya’s presence at all, the girl started blinking her eyes as if waking up from a kind of trance.

Her grey eyes wandered between her hands and the flowers, widened in utter disbelief.

“How have you done that?” Anya asked after a moment as her mind still had difficulties to grasp what had just happened. She distinctly remembered old myths she had heard from an elder of the Desert Clan about people who once had walked the earth and were able to heal by their touch.

“I..” the girl stuttered and shook her head helplessly, confusion flashing over her features.

“Has this happened before?” Anya implored with an intense gaze.

Marie immediately shook her head in the negative. The girl could not even explain what had happened at all. She had just seen the destroyed flowers and something inside of her had called to her, to kneel before them and touch them, mourning the loss of such beauty. Her fingertips had felt awkwardly warm and tingly, when she touched them, but she had not even noticed what she had somehow made happen, before she had seen the shock in Anya’s face.

“Do not let anyone see that” Anya cautioned sharply.

Marie cocked her head to the side obviously confused by the order.

“You seem to be gifted with a very rare talent, Marie” Anya said “But until you don’t know the extent of your talent and how to control it, it can be dangerous for you, if others know about it.”

The girl nodded her head immediately, still looking at her own fingers with confusion written over her face “Do you know someone, who can do something like that?” she asked faintly, brows scrunched up.

Anya shook her head in the negative “No and that is why we need to keep it a secret for now. I distinctly remember an old myth about people gifted with the power of healing, but I don’t know if there is any truth to it.”

Before the general got the chance to elaborate and recall to the girl what she remembered, a flare illuminated the sky.

“The signal” the girl said in a breathless voice, feeling her heart stutter in her chest momentarily.

Anya nodded, face hardening in the blink of an eye and immediately grabbed onto Marie’s shoulder, pulling the girl along, hurrying them back to the army’s camp.

Lexa and Clarke were standing in front of the commander’s tent, looking down onto the main part of the army, as Lexa gave the order to sound the horn, signalling for their army to start the attack.

The preparation to leave went over in a blur.

Anya jostled Marie back into the commander’s tent having the girl sit on one of the chairs and after applying her own war paint, she carefully designed Marie’s war paint.

She used black war paint around the girl’s eyes and created a design similar to that Lexa wore, but she created what resembled a bird with outstretched wings over the young girl’s face making her grey eyes appear even clearer and harder. The grey of her eyes now did not look soft anymore but rather hard, almost like polished silver.

Lexa approved of the design and handed Marie a light sword to give her more protection than the dagger would offer, the girl had shown in the match against Octavia that she had at least some instinct in fighting with a sword.

While all the warriors seemed to buzz with excitement and energy, eagerly awaiting to shed the blood of their enemies, all Marie felt was a paralyzing fear.

She stumbled behind Lexa almost blindly, who walked next to Clarke, shadowed by Gustus and Anya, keeping closer to the young girl, and Marie felt strangely numb in her body.

Once they had passed the perimeter, where they knew the acid fog could reach them, the army started to emit war cries all around them and Marie shuddered.

Marie would be joining Lexa and Anya in the team to head for Mount Weather’s front door. It was a relatively short distance to cover by foot and no soldiers from the Mountain seemed to be waiting for them.

“They are sure their door is unbreakable” Clarke said, looking around the entrance of the Mountain.

 Lexa nodded, they had agreed to assemble the army’s main force at the front gate to keep the attention of the Mountain Men away from the small group heading for the dam and the reaper tunnels.

Standing in front of the big metal door the waiting began anew. “For what are we waiting exactly?” Marie asked Anya lowly anxious for something to happen.

A man from the Ark had dug a hole into the door and inserted explosives made by Raven. 

The girl could see Lexa and Clarke speaking with each other, a slight distance away, but she could not hear the words.

“For the red lamp to fade. Clarke said, that signalled the dam’s destruction and would leave the Mountain without power” Anya explained in a hushed tone, dearly hoping that their plan would work, as their successfulness solely dependent on that step. If the door was not opened, they would not be able to enter the Mountain.

From the direction of the dam, a loud explosion suddenly resonated, making the ground they were standing on vibrate slightly and the small red lamp went out only a second later.

“Time window begins” Clarke said, offering the remote control of the explosives to Lexa.

The commander wanted to press the button together, but nothing happened once they did.

“Why doesn’t it work?” Lexa asked with a furrowed brow.

“They must be jamming the signal” Clarke cried out “I must get closer”.

Once the blonde moved in the direction of the door, soldiers suddenly appeared on a ridge positioned on a side of the door opening fire on them.

“You work on the door” Lexa ordered Clarke and motioned to a small group of warriors to follow her “I will take care of the soldiers”

The blonde leader nodded and Lincoln stayed with her to help, while Marie hurried closely behind Anya, praying silently that the bullets would miss them, but the soldiers seemed to still aim for the group around Clarke.

Once they had reached the top of the ridge and Lexa motioned the warriors to attack, Anya having her sword at the ready, a soldier from the Mountain appeared, having a white flag in his hands he had put up in surrender.

Lexa halted her warriors with a simple gesture, waiting for the man to make his move, as she scanned the area looking out, if they had just run into a trap, but all the soldiers of the Mountain who had aimed at them had lowered their weapons.

“I am here on the president’s order” the man addressed Lexa, clearly aware of who he was talking to “He wishes to make a deal”.

Lexa’s lips thinned as her fingers tightened around her sword eager to strike at the man, but waiting what they had to offer.

The man cautiously stepped closer and Lexa saw that he had a radio in his other hand and a rectangular object strapped to his belt, that looked strangely like a mirror.

“The president offers to let all of the prisoners from you go unscathed” the man said calmly.

“On what terms?” Lexa asked through clenched teeth, her mind already reeling with the possibility to get all the prisoners out without further bloodshed.

“You call your army to stand down, leave the area and your people will be save from us” the man retorted easily.

The commander furrowed her brow, narrowing her eyes at the man. That deal sounded too easy to be true. “What happens with the Skykru?” Lexa asked in a strong tone.

“They are not part of the deal” the man said and suddenly his eyes found Marie standing behind the commander “The president also demands to have her” he pointed with his finger at Marie, who sucked in a loud gasp of air her grey eyes widening.

Anya tightened the grip on her sword, her knuckles becoming white under her skin and she seemed to growl. The woman stepped closer to Marie, ready to shield the child with her own body.

“What if I don’t agree to the deal?” Lexa retorted. She knew that they could still win this battle, once Clarke succeeded in opening the door.

The man’s face contorted into an ugly smirk “The president knew you would not be convinced so easily” he motioned the commander closer, pushing a button on the rectangular object somehow turning the piece of teach on.

Lexa cautiously stepped closer, Gustus shadowing her to strike the man down in a second if necessary. The commander looked at the object in the man’s hands and Anya’s breath caught in her throat painfully, as she recognized the room the Mountain Men had kept her in.

The cages they could see were all empty now and the prisoners had been forced on their knees in front of a row of soldiers armed with guns pointing at the front line of prisoners. “They will all be dead in a few seconds otherwise” the man drawled, obviously deeply pleased with the progression.

Lexa had to control her fury, but it must have shown on her face as the man pressed a button on the radio and just said “Shoot” and the soldiers killed the first line of prisoners with single clean shots to their heads, their lifeless bodies slumping to the floor.

Lexa’s eyes widened in horror at the sight, she knew they would never reach this room to rescue any of the prisoners in time, but something still made her pause and hesitate to take the deal.

“You may have your deal, with the exception of the girl and the Skykru outside of the Mountain” the commander said in a cold voice.

 But the man shook his head and a vicious glint flashed through his eyes “We feared you would say that. One of our spotters has been able to locate your capitol and we are able to fire a missile there as well now. All I have to do is give the order and the missile will explode, destroying your beloved capitol immediately.”

Lexa felt the blood run cold in her body. She thought of all the innocents living in Polis, of her novitiates and everything the capitol stood for. She had no means of checking, if the man was bluffing or not, but she could not risk that he spoke the truth. She felt her heart hardening against the decision, she was forced to make now.

“I accept” she said in a monotonous voice, her face a mask of stone. She still stood proud and tall, green eyes cold and unyielding.

“I was sure we would reach an agreement” the man said smugly, a smirk tugging at his lips and he motioned for a soldier to take the girl behind the commander.

Marie had listened to the short talk with her breath stuck in her throat. She looked at Lexa in complete bewilderment, her eyes watering with tears as she shook her head. She could not wrap her mind around the fact, that the commander had agreed to hand her over like that.

She looked up over her shoulder fleetingly, seeking help from Anya, but to her internal horror, the woman was not moving. Anya met her eyes only for a second and Marie saw a deep regret flashing through them, before her brown eyes hardened and her face lost its expression.

She tried to struggle against the hands of the soldier, suddenly seizing her, but the man was way stronger than her and the man began to drag her away from Anya and the commander.

“Anya...” Marie desperately cried out for the woman to help her, but Anya did not move.

Her face had become an impassive mask and only her eyes showed the regret she felt, but she would not move against the commander’s order. She felt something inside of her break, as she had to watch the girl being dragged away, her shrill screams dulling the farer she was brought away and she knew her former second well enough to read the little signs in her face, as the tightening of her jaw to know that she felt the same way.

They had promised to protect the girl and they had both failed her…

This is the last edited chapter for now. I will make a pause in editing now and try to continue my actual writing instead. I would consider the first part of the story to be close after this chapter.

 

 

Chapter 58

Marie continued to scream and struggle against the soldier from the Mountain dragging her into a smaller door and through unfamiliar halls. She had managed to get one hand free and had tried to get a hold of her dagger, the sword had already been taken from her and the soldier had carelessly let it fall to the ground.

The man stopped in his movements abruptly and Marie thought that he must have seen her reach for her dagger. She could not react quickly enough, before the soldier had physically slammed her into the wall behind them.

Marie’s head snapped back forcefully, colliding with the wall painfully and her fingers let go of the dagger immediately. In the back of her mind, she could hear it falling to the cement floor with a clattering sound, but she was still dazed from the impact against her head.

She was unable to put up much of a fight after that and the man easily dragged her along now. He did not seem to care, if she stumbled and fell on the way, simply tightening his grip on her arms and hoisting her back to her feet roughly.

She was paralyzed with fear and still could not believe that Lexa had just handed her over like that. The last seconds of what had transpired outside of the Mountain, kept on repeating in front of her eyes.

She had seen Anya shortly one last time when she was dragged away, regret plainly to see in her brown eyes but the woman had not moved to help her, Marie knew that the general would never disobey the commander like that, but it still hurt deeply that her screams for help had been ignored like that.

The question if she would someday have to die for Lexa flashed back up in her mind. Bitter tears streamed down her cheeks, as she thought that her “someday” was obviously way sooner than she would have ever anticipated. When she had thought about the possibility last night, she had envisioned being wounded mortally in the battle, but never being handed over just like that. She could not understand how Lexa had been able to hand her over like that, the commander had not even looked at her after accepting the deal, remaining with her back to her. She had thought that they were sharing a familial bond now and she could never imagine betraying your family like that.

She was dragged into a room where Marie saw some of the others from the drop ship. Some were locked into cages while others were chained to the wall, she also saw Raven and Abby among them. Marie recognized Harper and Monroe, both being contained in a small cage, and both of their bodies were littered with bruises and Harper seemed barely conscious.

When the man dragged her towards a table and ripped her coat from her Marie started to struggle again. She struggled in earnest once she spotted corpses on the side of the room on table like they wanted to strap her to. She did not recognize who had died exactly on this tables, but the corpses were dressed in weird gowns and bloody patches were visible through the thin fabric.

“Just make it easier for all of us and stop your senseless struggle” a man wearing a suit drawled at her. The man had dark hair and eyes and a sneer was plastered on his face but he had to be important as the others from the Mountain all listened to his commands. All of her struggles were in vain when she was hoisted onto the table by three soldiers at once. They quickly strapped her to the table face down immobilizing her completely. Fear gripped her body and she could barely breathe anymore.

A man wearing a medical gown shoved up her shirt and lowered her trousers slightly exposing her hip. He sprayed some liquid onto the exposed area, she tried to wiggle away but the restrains were too tightly and suddenly Marie heard a screeching sound and without any warning she suddenly felt a blinding pain explode in her hip. She screamed at the top of her lungs but the pain did not stop so didn’t the screeching noise.

“Please stop” Marie could distinctly make out Abby’s voice “She is just a child”. Marie suddenly lost consciousness as the screeching noise finally stopped and all became black around her, her body succumbing to the shock.

In the meantime Lexa had spoken to Clarke telling her of the deal. The commander hoped that her eyes would tell the blonde leader how much she regretted the decision she had to make but the look of utter bewilderment belied that hope instantly.

She nevertheless motioned Gustus to sound the retreat as she had promised and a few moments later her prisoners were released. The people stumbling out of the Mountain were so weakened most of them were barely able to walk and Lexa doubted she had ever had a real chance to get them out without the deal. They would not have been of much help in the battle and would have fallen easily.

The commander led her army away from the Mountain her heart getting heavier with each step she took. Anya did not seem to fare much better and the look of utter devastation on her mentor’s face made Lexa stop the army “I may have made a deal with Mountain to call for the retreat so I cannot ask you to fight the Mountain. But whoever wants to try and help Skykru can do so…” She let her voice trail off, she could not join whoever wanted to return to the Mountain’s door. Anya looked at Lexa searching her eyes for something and when she seemed to have found what she was searching for she clasped Lexa’s forearm “May we meet again”. Lexa had known the moment she had spoken that Anya would return to the Mountain without any sliver of doubt. She dearly hoped that they would somehow succeed with the impossible and that Anya could rescue Marie.

Not many warriors seemed willing to return to the Mountain. They had seen the door close again and the fear for guns was still running deep in their veins. But Anya led a small group of twenty soldiers back to the Mountain approaching the tunnels and Lincoln was of course among them.

They met Clarke and Octavia in the tunnels with whom Lincoln shared a passionate kiss immediately. Clarke eyed their group suspiciously addressing Anya bitterly “Hasn’t your commander sounded the retreat?”

The general nodded “She has, but she gave those who wanted to return the choice and we chose to return. So how do we get in?”

Clarke turned back to the door hammering against it with her bare hands. Anya furrowed her brow that would only work in alerting the Mountain to their presence. As she made to tell the blonde this the door in front of them suddenly opened from the other side. Anya and the other warriors had already grabbed their weapons to attack whoever was behind that door. But they were not faced with a soldier from the Mountain but rather with Bellamy. The man did not seem impressed with the size of the army “That is all you have?” Two other teenagers appeared behind him reuniting with Clarke and Octavia and a young woman wearing one of the protective suits appeared as well. Anya whipped out her sword ready to kill the woman from the Mountain but Bellamy stepped in front of her “She helped us. She is not the enemy”

Anya reluctantly lowered her weapon when Clarke backed him up. It was clear quickly that Skykru had no plan on how to succeed now that the commander’s army was not there to fight for them. With a bigger force Anya would have barged just right in but she knew that would be suicide under this conditions so the woman settled on waiting what Clarke would come up with.

The few soldiers they encountered on their way to a man called Dante were killed before they even saw them coming. The man had obviously been the president of this place and Anya itched to kill him immediately. Forcing the man in the direction of a room Skykru called command centre was easy with a sword pointing at his back but the man did not give up the entry codes and Anya watched with rapped confusion how one of the teenagers started to work on the doors programming.

“We don’t need him anymore, do we?” Anya asked Clarke pointing her sword at Dante wanting to end him already but the girl vehemently declined. The teenager suddenly whooped in excitement and the door slid open making all the warriors take a step back whipping out their swords.

Anya followed Clarke into the room once it was clear the room was save and watched as the teenager who had opened the door now worked on more tech in front of him. Suddenly moving pictures appeared just like on the little thing the Mountain Man outside on the ridge had shown to Lexa showing a room where the other Skykru were kept. Anya growled in anger once she recognized Marie being hoisted from the table with a bleeding wound on her body but as the soldiers hoisted the girl into a cage she still seemed to be alive but judging from her lack of reaction to the treatment she had probably lost consciousness. The woman remembered that Clarke had told her Marie’s cells were somehow superior so they would probably try to keep her alive for as long as possible. That would hopefully give her time to get to the girl before they had killed her.

Clarke spoke over the radio with Cage demanding her friends to be set free or she would kill his father. Anya looked at the blonde girl sceptically she doubted that would really change their course of actions. She knew that any kind of good leader would readily sacrifice the life of one man in order to save more of their own. She was proven correct when Cage now had Clarke’s own mother strapped to the table as his only reaction.

“Can’t we just attack them where they are?” Anya asked pointing at the picture of the room. The teenager working with the tech shook his head “They shut themselves into this level. There is no way in and with most of the power systems damaged I can’t hack into it.” Anya furrowed her brow she was unfamiliar with a lot of the words in the context the boy used them, but she understood that he regarded it impossible to get into the room.

Clarke seemed to have an idea after a few moments of tense silence “Can you program the vents in a reverse way. Have them suck in outside air?”

Bellamy looked at the girl with widened eyes “Clarke that would kill all the innocents”. Anya wondered mutely why Bellamy looked so affronted at the idea. She knew well that Lexa and most of the warriors would never have stayed true to Clarke’s original plan of only a rescue mission.

Suddenly movements could be seen on the pictures of another hall and Clarke said that they would be attacking the commander centre. Anya motioned her warriors outside “We will guard the entrance”.

Clarke agreed instantly while the teenage boy seemed to be working furiously with the tech after confirming that theoretically the programming she had asked for should be possible. The warriors fanned out in the corridor seeking cover wherever something was available and then they waited. They had the advantage of the surprise on their side, the soldiers had obviously not been aware of their presence.

Two of the warriors who had come with Anya were wounded by the guns of the Mountain Men but they managed to keep them away from the door. They were still trying to shoot them when suddenly a loud screeching alarm sounded. The soldiers from the Mountain were distracted enough by the alarm for Anya and her warriors to strike them down one by one without any further losses.

Anya had just driven her sword through the last soldier when the door to the command centre slid open and Clarke stepped out looking deathly pale. Anya surmised that the teenage boy had succeeded then and all the Mountain Men were bound to die now.

“They had opened the level once the alarm sounded” Clarke said to Anya her voice sounding hollow and her hands shaking. Anya felt little pity for the blonde girl, leading meant making hard choices.

The sight that met them on the way was horrifying. Corpses lay scattered around level 5. The people looked as if they had all suddenly caught fire and had been burnt to death. A boy probably not older than five summers had still been breathing labouredly every breath a loud wheezing sound in the deathly silence around him. Anya had barely spared him a glance as she had slid his throat ending his suffering quickly.

They did not meet many survivors on their way to the room where Marie and the others were kept. A few soldiers who had obviously already been treated had tried to run and escape but Anya had her soldiers hunt them down, she did not want even one Mountain Man surviving. When the sun rose again the Mountain Men would have been extinguished completely from their existence.

Halfway to the room they ran into Skykru. A man was carrying Marie’s limp body and Anya immediately stepped up to him demanding to be handed the girl over. The man seemed to hesitate for a second but Anya merely growled at him in warning and he gave the girl up willingly then. She cautiously cradled the small body in her arms feeling for a pulse on her neck and with a relieved breath she felt the signs of life in the girl’s body.

Abby offered to look at Marie in Camp Jaha but Anya immediately declined telling the woman that they would join the rest of the army on their way back to Polis now. The woman watched as Clarke seemed to break down in front of her mother crying as she said “I tried to be the good guy, mom”. The doctor had tears in her eyes as well looking at the corpses scattered around the room her eyes staying on the children’s bodies for longer before she said “Maybe there are no good guys”.

“The commander will surely reach out to you soon to establish a lasting alliance” Anya said to Clarke before she turned to leave but the girl did not react to her. Their group was held up when Octavia made to join them together with Lincoln and Bellamy stepped in loudly demanding his sister to return to their own settlement. But the girl was a force on her own to be beckoned with and decided that Skykru were never really her people. The boy looked defeated to see his little sister leave but he seemed to accept for now that nothing he could say would change her mind nor would he be able to physically force her to stay. Anya was sure Indra would be happy to have her second back at her side.

Anya was worried that Marie did not stir once on the way but her body still felt warm and her heart continued to beat. The army had travelled extremely slowly due to the many weakened prisoners from the Mountain. Lexa had made them set up the camp not long from the Mountain so the small group of warriors around Anya did not take long to reach them.

Tales immediately started to spread through the camp telling how Clarke had defeated the Mountain on her own and how the Mountain Men had suddenly burnt to death.

Anya brought Marie straight into the commander’s makeshift tent. Lexa had sat at the table on her own, things thrown on the floor and some plates shattered in obvious anger. The woman’s green eyes were filled with tears when she whirled around and shouted angrily “I told you I didn’t want …” She broke of once she recognized Anya and spotted Marie in her arms.

“You returned” Lexa sounded completely baffled and Anya nodded gently placing the girl’s limp body on Lexa’s bed. It was obvious to Anya in this moment that Lexa had not believed there was a possible chance to win against the Mountain without the army and that she had willingly let her leave even though she thought to have leave her to go a suicide mission. The commander looked at the young girl with regret clear on her face “Is she…?”

“No” Anya shook her head quickly “She is alive, just unconscious. But she was wounded gravely.” The woman gently rolled Marie’s body onto her side and exposed the still sluggishly bleeding wounds on her hips. Even though the wounds did not look big, Anya knew them to be extremely deep. Anya had seen what they had done to Marie when Clarke’s mother had been strapped to the table. The general explained to her former second what had happened at the Mountain.

Silence settled over them as Lexa seemed to process what had happened “So Clarke has managed to free her friends and lay siege to the Mountain?” It was clear Lexa had a hard time processing all the new information.

The general nodded “The Mountain has been erased. Blood must have blood.”

“What is it?” Anya asked Lexa when the younger woman still looked unsettled. “Clarke has managed on her own, what I and every commander before me have failed to do” Lexa answered some admiration for the blonde leader obvious on her face.

Anya furrowed her brow “You have grown to care for her…” She let her voice trail of. She doubted the clans would take it well if the commander was to be romantically involved with Skykru. Now that the Mountain was defeated the clans would search for another enemy and Skykru with their tech would come into their focus quickly.

Marie suddenly started to move slightly under the hand Anya still had placed over the girl’s side. “Marie” she addressed the girl in a soothing voice and the girl’s eyes flew open her body twisting away from her hand. The girl was gasping for air and her eyes were widened in blind terror. Tears were streaming down the girl’s face but every time Anya or Lexa tried to reach out to her the girl scooted farther away from them and she did not react to soothing words. In the end the girl exerted herself and slumped over powerlessly. Lexa immediately called Gustus to call for a healer.

Bot Lexa and Anya were worried that the girl had not reacted to them at all. But Lexa feared that she may have destroyed any trust the girl had had for her with handing her over to the Mountain. The girl was still too young to completely understand the burdens of her position and what sacrifices came with it. She hoped she would be able to atone for her decision somehow but it would probably take a long time as she had failed the girl completely. Anya would probably have an easier chance once the girl heard that the general had returned to the Mountain just for her.

“Everything will work out” Anya said disrupting Lexa’s silent musings.

“Mmpfh” the commander grunted in silent disagreement. Now that their common enemy had been defeated, she would have a harder time keeping the coalition together. Lexa was facing hard times once the happiness of defeating the Mountain died down but she would face them when they presented, she felt better knowing that she still had Anya and Gustus at her side who she knew would both rather die for her then betray her.

So the next chapters will, as I already told you, solely focus around the grounders. And as we don't know anything about what really happened between the battle and when Clarke gets dragged to Polis, now I really have to make everything up so my writing progress is really slower in comparison, I hope you will stick with me nevertheless.

 

Chapter 59

The healer who had been called to take a look at Marie and care for her wounds seemed to be at a loss on how to treat the deep small wounds properly. Anya wondered if she should have taken up Abby’s offer and brought Marie back to the Skykru’s settlement instead where they would have been better equipped to help the girl.

All the healer could do was dress the wounds with an ointment working against infections and intendent to increase healing. The man said that he feared the girl would be unable to walk for some time but it was next to impossible for him to assess how deep the wounds really were.

The girl was obviously deeply exhausted and she did not wake for a long time, sleeping through the camp being broken up in the morning. Marie woke to a swaying motion and arms encircling her. After a moment it registered into her sluggish mind that she was pressed against someone’s chest and flashes of the Mountain Men dragging her through their halls flashed up in her mind, Marie started to struggle against the restraining arms.

Anya tightened her arms around Marie’s trashing form when the girl started to struggle against her hold before the girl would fall from the horse. “Marie, calm down” Anya addressed the girl in a soothing tone “You are safe now.” The girl’s eyes were unfocused with pain and she obviously did not recognize her completely as she continued to struggle. “Ssshh” Anya soothed “I have got you, ai skaifaya” The girl’s nickname seemed to somehow reach deeper into her clouded consciousness and the girl’s eyes connected with her brown ones whispering in a strained befuddled voice “Anya?”

The general tightened her arms around the girl giving her a reassuring squeeze “Yes, you are safe now” It took Marie obviously a few minutes to understand the words her face contorting with a pained grimace with every step the horse beneath her took jostling her injured hip with the movements. “How?” Marie asked in a weak voice laced with confusion. Anya shortly glanced at Lexa, Marie seemed oblivious to the rest of the army behind them as well as to Lexa and Gustus on horses beside Anya.

The commander motioned for a guard to call for a healer. It was obvious the girl was in pain and she hoped they had something strong enough to rid her of it. Their journey to Polis would probably take them at least until sundown. If they even reached the capitol at all this day.

Anya lowly explained to Marie what had happened after Lexa had called for the retreat to be sounded “Some of us returned to fight with Skykru” “You returned for me?” the girl interrupted her with such hope in her eyes that Anya immediately reassured her “Yes, I returned for you”.

The healer Lexa had called for interrupted them. He handed Anya some herbs the girl was to chew. Marie reluctantly chewed on the herbs which had a bitter taste to them her features showing her disgust at the taste clearly. The girl stared ahead mutely while chewing on the herbs and Anya could see her starting to struggle to stay awake. She ordered the girl to spit out the remains of the herbs pulled her more tightly against her chest instructing her to rest. They would continue their travels for some hour’s maybe way into the night and it would be less taxing on the girl if she slept through most it.

Anya could clearly spot the conflict on the commander’s exhausted features and lowly addressed the young woman so that only she would be able to catch the words “She will forgive you eventually”. Lexa seemed to startle slightly at the comment but stayed silent only glancing at the now sleeping girl in Anya’s arms. They had both noticed that Marie had not once asked after Lexa when she had been awake. But while Anya chalked that up to pain and exhaustion Lexa knew better. She had given the order for the retreat and agreed to hand over Marie, not Anya. And she had not returned to the Mountain for Marie, she could not have while Anya did. Marie would forgive Anya quickly that much was obvious but Lexa doubted she would be granted forgiveness this easily as well. Looking back at the army and spotting all those who had been allowed to leave the Mountain because of the deal and thinking of Polis told Lexa that she had made the only choice possible no matter how deeply she had hurt those she cared about with it. Blue eyes full of hurt and disbelief flashed up in her mind at her train of thought and she wondered how the blonde leader was faring. Lexa doubted she would be well with the weight of her own decision to kill all of the Mountain Men.

The army seemed as anxious to return to Polis as quickly as possible just like Lexa herself felt and they all pushed through the exhaustion of the long strenuous travel reaching the big city a few hours after nightfall. The main part of the army erected their tents on the outskirt of the city accommodations impossible to come up with this late in the night. Marie slept through their arrival into the city and Anya carried the girl into the room in the tower assigned to them both by Lexa. The commander had chosen to give them one of the big rooms on the floor her own quarters were located.

The guard and staff of the tower who still were up at this late hour all chanted her title once she entered the tower. She knew that the welcome would have been much grander had they not arrived in the middle of the night but Lexa longed to rest in her own bed. Her nightbloods were all already asleep as well so she would see them the next day knowing that the deal might have saved their lives. Titus had obviously been awoken by someone and greeted her in the hall in front of her quarters.

“Not now, Titus” Lexa said her voice tired. All she wanted was to sleep right now. “The Mountain has fallen?” the bald man asked having heard only rumours until now. The commander nodded “But not thanks to our army” When the man’s brows scrunched in confusion Lexa held up her hand silencing him “I will explain in the morning”. Titus bowed to her although obviously reluctantly and Lexa finally entered her quarters shrugging out of the armour letting the pieces fall to the floor carelessly. The commander fell into her bed still clad in her trousers, undershirt and boots. She felt into a sleep haunted by familiar blue and grey eyes looking at her in utter betrayal.

Anya had placed Marie’s sleeping form on the large bed in the centre of the room covering the girl with soft warm furs. The woman quietly stripped out of her clothes and walked over to the windows looking out over the city. A cold breeze moved the veils slightly and Anya wondered what would happen now. Lexa had been able to forge the coalition because of a common enemy and as long as Anya could remember the Mountain had always cast a shadow over Trikru lands. Now that the Mountain had finally fallen the future was uncertain.

Distressed noises coming from the bed called Anya away from the windows and she laid down next to Marie gently trying to sooth the girl.

Marie suddenly opened her eyes widened with fear her breathing unregularly and once she recognized Anya holding her the girl sobbed “You really came back for me. It wasn’t a dream?”

“No” Anya reassured against her throat constricting painfully “You are safe now, Marie.” The girl cried for some time her face buried against Anya’s chest her sobs shaking her slight frame.

When the girl pulled back a bit she peered up at Anya with huge eyes “Did Lexa also come back?” The voice of the girl sounded awfully small.

The general shook her head with a heavy sigh “She could not”. She could only watch on helplessly as Marie’s grey eyes flooded with fresh tears and hold the girl against her chest. Anya gently let finger glide through the girl’s blonde locks until the girl had exhausted herself crying herself to sleep. It took Anya longer to find rest herself even though her body was exhausted her mind could not seem to find rest.

Anya was woken by a knock on the door a young handmaid slipping into the room a moment later carrying a tray with breakfast “Heda ordered to have breakfast brought to you. She is in a meeting until midmorning and not to be disturbed”. Anya furrowed her brow but let the handmaid walk around the room picking up their clothes to be washed. The general gently shook the girl’s shoulder to rouse her. Her grey eyes searching their surroundings frightened before she recognized Anya.

What the healer had feared was proven correct when Marie collapsed back onto the bed after she tried to stand up her legs unable to support her weight with a pained groan. Anya turned to the handmaid who was still busy with cleaning up the room and preparing a bath “Call for a healer”. The young girl probably barely having seen thirteen summers scrambled to obey when Anya glared at her.

“It hurts” the girl said in a pitiful voice “And why can’t I walk?” “The healer give you something against the pain” Anya reassured her charge “And you will probably just need some time to rest before you get better”.

A few minutes later the handmaiden returned with an older woman with dark blonde hair and light brown eyes. She addressed the girl in English “Can you turn on your stomach, so that I can properly look at your wounds?” Anya had wanted to tell the woman that Marie was proficient enough to speak their language but thought better of it in the last second who knew what the girl might hear if others weren’t aware she would be able to understand them. The general helped Marie roll over when it was obvious that even that movement caused her great pain.

The healer gently felt around the wounds after removing the rest of the reddish ointment. Even applying very little pressure made the girl moaning in pain trying to twist away from the touch. “Can she walk?” the healer asked Anya and the general shook her head “Her legs gave out once she stood up”.

Anya watched the woman’s face worry flashing over her features and asked “She will be able to walk again, won’t she?” The general had even thought of that possibility until now, what if the girl never recovered from her injuries?

Marie had lifted her head twisting around to look at the healer with fear in her eyes. The woman regarded the girl obviously unsure “I can’t say. The wounds must be very deep to cause such damage. Only time will tell.”

She applied another ointment onto the girl’s wounds dressing her hips with clean bandages and prepared a tea for the girl. The healer turned to Anya once Marie started drinking the tea obediently pulling a face at the bitter taste “She should rest and not attempt to walk as long as her legs don’t support her weight. She might increase the damage otherwise. I will come back in a few hours. All we can do now is working against the pain and keeping the wounds clean.”

Anya watched as Marie’s eyes started to fall close obviously against her will “You have given her something to sleep?”

The healer nodded “Keeping her as immobile as possible seems the best with her wounds.”

“How long do you think until she gets better?” Anya asked looking down at the girl with a sinking feeling.

“I don’t know” the healer answered honestly shaking her head “I will come back in a few hours. I want to dose her again with something to sleep at least for a few days. She should only be awake to eat and drink something”.

Anya nodded and watched the healer leave. The handmaid told her meekly that she had prepared a bath for her and the general dismissed the girl with a wave of her hands. She could not say why, but somehow the handmaid felt off somehow. 

The general left the room calling two guards to stand post in front of the doors with the strict order to keep everyone out and notify her were Marie to wake before she returned.

Anya wandered through the tower in the direction of the throne room where she assumed Lexa would be briefing Titus on what had happened. The woman did not look forward to having to deal with the annoying man on a daily basis again. The man had always done everything in his power to drive her away from Lexa once she had taken up command and she doubted he would be pleased to see her return to Lexa’s side.

Guards standing in front of the doors to the throne room confirmed her suspicion. One of them was Ryder and the man immediately stepped aside to let her pass. The other man, Anya did not recognize, stepped in to halt her approach “The flamekeeper said the commander is not to be disturbed”. Anya growled at the impertinent man in warning and Ryder said “Heda herself gave orders to let her general enter if she wished to do so”. The other man reluctantly stepped aside as well opening the great doors for the woman.

Lexa sat on her throne in her full commander regalia. She gave quite the formidable impression only her green eyes showing her exhaustion and obvious annoyance. “Titus” Anya drawled in a mock greeting. The bald man’s eyes glittered angrily at her “I have given the guards orders to not let anyone enter. This is a private meeting.”

Anya just arched her brow at the man unfazed and looked at Lexa which only made the man’s anger mount at being blatantly ignored. The commander acknowledged Anya’s presence with a simple nod and shortly addressed Titus “Anya will resume her place as my personal advisor, Titus. She is always to be allowed entry” as a second thought she added “So is our second”.

Lexa could see a vein pulsing on Titus’ forehead in silent fury but he wisely kept his mouth shut and she now addressed Anya “How is Marie?” The girl had occupied her thoughts now for some time making it hard to concentrate on Titus’ tirade on how they should attack the Skykru right now when they were still vulnerable. She had waved the man off immediately, she planned to engage Skykru in a permanent alliance and not wipe them out.

Anya’s face clearly showed her worry for the girl “Not as well, as I had hoped. She is unable to walk. The wounds have caused great harm.” The woman could see Lexa breathing in deeply her face contorted with guilt “What does the healer say?” Anya glanced out towards the balcony shortly before she answered “She is unsure when Marie will heal…” after a second and swallowing deeply she added “…or if she ever will”.

Lexa covered her face with her hands for a moment silence settling over them as she stared into nothing. She had been the cause for the injuries, she may not have caused them with her own hands but for all that mattered she could have as well.

“Anya and the girl should leave for a Trikru village before word of her presence gets out” Titus said after another moment. Anya did not like at all how the flamekeeper spoke about her as if she wasn’t in the same room and she would have liked nothing more than to just kill him.

Lexa also looked furious and swept from her throne in a single quick motion stepping up to Titus their noses almost touching as she seethed into the man’s face “If you value your life, you will never suggest something like that again”

The man seemed surprised by her outburst and lowered his head in submission silently apologizing although Anya could see the anger and distrust in his eyes. “Leave now, start preparations for the feast and call the novitiates to me” Lexa commander backing away slightly from the man.

“A feast?” Anya commented once the man had left the throne room. “To celebrate those freed from the Mountain” Lexa said stepping out onto the balcony and Anya followed the clearly troubled woman.

“Not for defeating the Mountain?” Anya asked after a moment below them on the streets the city was slowly coming to life and filling with people milling about their daily routine. Lexa shook her head “I won’t take credit for something that I have not done.”

The general nodded looking out over the city remembering the whispering among the army that had started about the blonde Skykru army. She had tried to dispel the rumour of Clarke making the Mountain Men burn somehow with her pure will but their understanding of tech wasn’t enough to explain what had really happened and the people tented to believe what they wanted to. “They call her wanheda now” Anya remarked after another moment of silence.

Lexa nodded feeling troubled although she had also heard the whispering amongst her soldiers. The tale would have started to spread around Polis and no matter what she were to say at the feast it would not change anything anymore. She wondered if that title would offer protection to Clarke with the respect it commander or if it would put her in danger but the upcoming weeks would show that.

 

Chapter 60

A strange sort of a routine set in for Marie in the span of the next few days. She slept for most of the day induced by the bitter tea the healer forced her to drink and whenever she woke the young handmaiden was there offering her food and something to drink. Sometimes Anya was also there but the general was kept busy with attending meeting with the clan’s ambassadors and helping the preparation of the big festival. Marie’s mind had become a hazy mixture of pain and flashes of her memories of the Mountain and whenever she woke up she was completely drenched in a cold sweat although the tea prevented the nightmares to take form fully. She felt more alone than ever when she woke and only the strange handmaiden was there to keep her company in the back of her mind she registered that she had not once seen the commander. The handmaiden had tried a few times to talk with Marie but the girl outright ignored the other girl just staring at nothing instead. Whenever the healer came with a new dose a the tea Marie started to fight the healer not wanting any more of the strange liquid that made her mind so sluggish.

After seven days the tea started to show side effects and Marie was unable to eat anything getting sick and feeling nauseas after only a few bites. Even though she slept for most of the day her body felt exhausted and when the healer finally had her try to stand up after the seven days her legs still collapsed under her after two steps. Anya who had been alerted by the healer beforehand and had insisted to be present had caught her before she tumbled to the floor completely but the healer still seemed pleased and had said “It is an improvement. But she should start to stay awake for longer now.”

So Marie was only given the tea once or twice a day and immediately once more before the night. She still did not want to drink more of the tea but the healer and Anya insisted that it was necessary. On the first day where she was not given the tea anymore directly after eating Anya had sat with her until the healer deemed enough time had passed to give her another dose. The general had repeated some lessons with her they had already had of some customs the different clans had and their origins. When Marie had asked to be taught some more Trigedasleng Anya had declined and cautioned the girl gently not to let anyone know how much of the language she already was able to understand. Marie had been confused by the strange demand but she had nodded her assent nevertheless. The girl had not once asked to see Lexa at all which still worried Anya slightly. The commander had sat at the girl’s bedside each evening long after the sun had set but Marie had always been asleep.

The commander was swept up into meetings of various kinds having left Polis alone for a few weeks now had only ended with a huge amount of work piled away for her. Anya helped her to the best of her abilities but that now also meant that the general had to leave Marie on her own in their room when the girl was not under the influence of the tea and awake. The young handmaid seemed eager to offer her assistance and without any other fitting alternative Anya agreed to that arrangement although she somehow did not feel well leaving their charge with a stranger like that.

Marie had no interest to talk to the unfamiliar girl in the beginning who had introduced herself as Arla in broken English. Marie was annoyed with the whole situation her hip still hurt with every slight movement but the less she moved the weaker her body got so the healer tried to have her stand up at least once a day now and try to take a few steps across the room with wobbly legs. And Marie was also strangely angry at Lexa’s apparent disinterest in her. Her sadness at having been discarded at the Mountain slowly turning into anger the longer she was left alone without any sign of the commander.

Arla had tried to get the younger girl to talk to her but her first attempts had all not been successful and she was getting nervous. She needed the girl’s corporation to save her family. The handmaid had blindly started conversations trying to get the girl to tell her something of her life in the sky, but Marie had just turned her head away from her wanting to be left alone to her silent sulking. Arla finally succeeded in reaching out to the other girl once she mentioned the commander, she had seen the grey eyes snap to her suddenly an angry glint underlined with a deep sadness appearing in them.

It had been pitifully easy to spin a tale of a girl pouring all her trust and hopes into the commander and to then be betrayed and left like she had never once mattered to her. Once she saw the naïve compassion in Marie’s eyes she had easily started to manipulate the girl’s feelings. But she had to be cautious. Arla had to try to hide what she was doing from the ever suspicious general so she changed the topic of their conversation to the upcoming festival whenever she heard footsteps approaching the room.

So with every short moment Arla was left alone with the girl she poisoned the girl’s mind with lies about the commander using her grief and anger and turning that into hate and a thirst for revenge. She managed to make Marie think that she was owed blood by the commander for her betrayal and she purposefully had not relayed the message from the commander that Marie could ask to meet her whenever the girl wanted. The last few days had been extremely hectic for the commander as she had to solve a discrepancy between the desert clan and the plainriders about a trade convey that had somehow gotten lost on its way. A war was threatening to break out between the two clans and Lexa was stuck in seemingly endless meetings trying to appease both of their leaders to reach a satisfactory compromise.

Anya still tried to be present every time when the healer again looked at Marie’s wounds and had the girl try to stand and walk a few steps. The general was relived to no end to see the girl starting to make progress after another week, Lexa and she had already started to fear the damage would really be lasting which would have destroyed Marie’s future as a warrior before it had even really begun.

“If you continue like that, you will be able to sit with us at the table at the opening ceremony of the festival” Anya said with softness in her brown eyes once Marie was able to walk across the room without any aid. It took the girl some effort as the beads of sweat on the girl’s brow showed and she clearly felt some pain judging by the grimace on her face but she finally started to walk again. “Us?” Marie echoed with a hollow sounding voice and Arla who had been listening in on the conversation hidden in the bathroom under the pretence of preparing a bath had held her breath in shock praying for the other girl not to react to anything Anya might say about the commander. All her plans and the days she had spent manipulating Marie would be in vain if Anya caught on that something was wrong now. Before Anya could question the girl’s uncharacteristic reaction as she had hoped Marie would look forward to the feast a guard entered calling Anya away to another meeting immediately and Arla let out a relieved mute sigh.

She would have to set the plan into motion quicker, the more time that went by the higher the risk that the general would have more moments alone with Marie now that the younger girl was awake for most of the day. The other girl’s soft smile directed at her once she stepped out of the bathroom was like a blow to the stomach and a testament that she had succeeded in garnering the others trust completely but Arla controlled her features carefully forcing a slight smile onto her own face.

“The commander will want to parade you around at the festival for sure” Arla said with malice to Marie helping the girl stand up from the bed and walk through the room carefully. She could see a frown settling on the other girl’s face and she asked “Parade me around?”

“Yeah, of course” Arla said in a know-it-all manner like it was the most obvious thing in the world “You are the girl who fell from the sky, a curiosity. That is solely why the commander took you as her second. You have seen that she doesn’t care about you at the Mountain.”

Marie’s face showed a flash of pain at the memory but she remained silent. She would have liked it better if Arla stopped talking to her about what happened at the Mountain, all she wanted was to forget about everything but it seemed the other girl was obsessed with the matter. “You do want the blood that is your right for that offense, don’t you?” Arla asked and when she saw a sliver of doubt on the younger girl’s face she added in a mocking tone “Or are you nothing more than the weak Sky girl not worth saving the commander surely sees you as such?”

Marie glared at the other girl “I am not weak” she said forcefully her hands balling into angry fists as she repeated what Arla had told her several times “She should bleed for her sins”. Marie was not even sure against who her anger was directed really, she was frustrated with the whole situation. Being stuck in this room with mostly only Arla and that she kept on speaking about the Mountain, Anya for being gone most of the day, her own body for not cooperating with her anymore or the commander for not showing up at all. Marie would like to have a chance to speak to the commander to somehow understand why she had so willingly left her behind.

“So make her” Arla simply said fishing a small dagger carefully wrapped into a bandage from a hidden pocket of her trousers. “Make her?” Marie echoed looking at the dagger with questioning eyes.

Arla nodded and Marie said in a huff “She won’t even see me. I haven’t seen her at all …” The bitterness in her voice was clear. Arla knew that the commander had been within these quarters nearly every night the younger girl had simply never been awake to notice.

“As her second you can officially demand a private audience” Arla explained hoping the girl would take her up on the offer as she needed Marie to make her move as soon as possible before her plot was uncovered “I can relay your demand right now.” She offered the dagger to the girl and Marie paused a second “You do want revenge, don’t you?” Arla said spurring the girl on “That is what you are owed after all”. Marie took a deep breath and nodded taking the dagger in her hand with slightly trembling fingers.

“And making her bleed will make me feel better?” Marie asked looking down at the dagger in a doubtful way. She still had a problem with grasping the concept of revenge. Arla bit her lip reigning in a curse and tried to reassure that of course it would help, their whole culture was based on revenge after all.

When Marie nodded again sliding the dagger into the back of her trousers Arla helped the girl the short distance into the commander’s quarters, which were unguarded right now, as the commander was not in them. “A small cut will be enough” Arla said forcing another smile before she left the girl. Marie looked behind her as she left with a furrow on her brow.

Marie looked around the unfamiliar room in interest. The huge bed in the back of the room was decorated by beautiful wooden carvings and many furs were piled onto the mattress. She could spot some of the commander’s armour and a substitute red sash in an open closet and the red sash brought memories of the battle at Mount Weather back to her mind. How Lexa had spoken with the soldier from the Mountain and had just agreed to hand her over, she had not even looked at her when the soldiers had dragged her away. Anger cursed through her veins again and Arla’s words echoed through her mind telling her that she was owed blood of the commander and that Lexa simply had never cared for her at all, that she had never cared for anyone really, that she would be left behind again.

Her small fingers were clenched around the small dagger she held behind her back when the sound of footsteps alerted her to someone walking through the hall. When she shortly remembered Lexa offering her a hug the night before the battle of the Mountain Marie clenched her jaw angrily forcing the memory from her mind forcefully. She held onto the memory of the commander’s turned back when she was dragged into the Mountain.

Lexa entered her quarters after calling a pause to the meeting when the handmaiden fetched her. She had waited patiently for the girl to be ready to talk with her. She had not seen Marie standing on her own feet and she felt lighter with relieve seeing the girl standing again a testament that the wounds were finally healing. “Marie, I am pleased to see you standing again” Lexa said in a soft voice with a slight smile.

Marie had just looked up at her with her eyes blazing with unconcealed fury “Liar” she had roared at the commander overcome with a thunderstorm of feelings and suddenly managed to strike the commander with the small dagger nearly fitting into her hand. The blade pierced through the sleeve of Lexa’s shirt on her arm and a small cut appeared having nicked the skin slightly. Lexa had been completely unprepared for the attack and had stepped back at the last second not managing to avoid the blade completely. The commander was speechless as she watched the girl staring at the cut on her arm a small amount of black blood standing out against her tanned skin.

The girl’s eyes looked up at her a second later and she let the dagger fall with a resonating clinking sound tears filling her eyes as she muttered “Arla said it would make me feel better…” all of the fury left the grey eyes instantly reflecting now only confusion and loss.

Lexa furrowed her brow in confusion “What would, Marie?” Even though the girl had let the blade fall from her hand Lexa was unsure if she might have other weapons hidden so she kept a distance away from the girl.

“Making you bleed” Marie said her voice heavy with tears. The commander furrowed her brow and let out a strained sigh. She would have gladly offered the girl a chance to take out her anger on her if that was what she needed but Lexa suddenly felt her vision becoming unclear and she looked at her arm in shock. The blade must have been coated in poison and a very strong poison at that. She felt her body starting to sway slightly and knew that her legs would give out in a moment. “Lexa” Marie shouted horrified when the woman started to crumble.

Anya burst into the door when she heard the girl’s scream and rushed to the commander’s form laying on the floor. “Poison” Lexa rasped out her vision blurring even more and her limps started to feel numb and cold with every second that passed.

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

Chapter 7: Chapter 61 - 70

Chapter Text

Chapter 61

Anya tried to assess what had happened before she burst into the room. Marie looked deathly pale and shaken while tears already ran down her cheeks. She noticed a small dagger lying next to the girl on the floor that was unfamiliar to her. Most alarming was Lexa’s state, the commander’s green eyes were fluttering and she seemed on the verge of losing consciousness altogether.

“What happened?” Anya addressed Marie who stood stock still her breath coming out in short panicked bursts when it became clear that speech had failed Lexa.

“I … I …” Marie sobbed through horrified tears “I didn’t know …”

“Didn’t know what?!” Anya demanded to know forcefully feeling Lexa’s breathing slowing at an alarming pace as her eyes fell back to the dagger next to Marie on the floor.

She picked the dagger up and turned to Marie “Where did you get that?” She brought the blade to her nose and carefully sniffed at it. Marie instantly answered her “Arla gave it to me”. The general let the dagger fall in shock she knew the smell and the poison it came from was absolutely deadly, she ran from the room in haste. Maybe the handmaid would have the antidote. Carrying a blade with such a deadly poison without the antidote was dangerous and even assassins tented to carry a small amount of the antidote in case they ever injured themselves accidentally with their blades. She was well aware that the chances an antidote would still be able to save Lexa were slim but she needed to try nevertheless.

Marie had slowly stepped up to Lexa who lay unnaturally still on the floor crying in earnest now recognizing what she had done. The commander’s eyes were still opened but she was scarcely breathing anymore and Marie knelt down next to her shaking her head in denial “I didn’t know … I am so sorry”

Lexa tried to smile at the girl turning her head to her. Marie laid her head onto the woman’s chest clutching at her shoulders tears streaming down her face. Suddenly the memory of how she had healed the flowers in the woods with Anya flashed up in Marie’s mind and the girl tried to remember how she had done that. For a second nothing happened but then the same strange feeling settled inside of her again and she closed her eyes in concentration her fingers gently touching the small cut on Lexa’s arm. Lexa’s eyes widened and also the poison in her body made it impossible to move she wanted nothing more than to move away from the girl’s fingers which seemed to fill her veins with a scalding liquid instead of blood.

Anya returned the exact moment that Marie had touched the cut on Lexa’s arm. The general had been unsuccessful in locating the handmaid. The girl had obviously left the tower after she had called the commander from the meeting but Anya had ordered warriors to follow her and bring her back. Someone would need to die for the assassination of the commander and she hoped she would be able to somehow spare Marie’s life. The general had not alerted anyone else just yet although she knew that it was her duty to alarm Titus to assemble the conclave. She felt her heart sink at this thought as she had hoped to never have to witness the conclave after Lexa’s death, had hoped that her second would outlive her.

When Anya crouched down next to Marie wanting to remove the girl from the room the child’s hands suddenly started to glow slightly and Anya sucked in a surprised breath seeing Lexa’s eyes widening although she had falsely been sure the commander would have already succumbed to the strong poison she hoped that Marie would miraculously be able to repeat what she had done for the flowers.

After what felt like an eternity to Anya but were in reality only a few seconds Lexa suddenly sucked in a harsh breath her eyes blinking. Marie blinked a few times coming back out of her trance like state and looked between Anya and Lexa in a mixture of disbelief and apparent relief. The girl let go of Lexa’s arm abruptly as if she had burnt herself and scooted an inch away from them as Lexa slowly sat up.  

“What has just happened?” Lexa asked after a moment looking down at her arm and letting her fingertips gently run over the limp. The arm was unblemished and the traces of the small amount of blood were gone. “She has healed you” Anya answered her voice resonating immense relief.

Lexa focused her green eyes on Marie who met her gaze for a second and then let it drop turning her head away and Lexa could see new tears starting to run down the girl’s cheeks. It was obvious she was overwhelmed and her tears were honest enough to know that the girl’s words of not having been aware of the poison were also no lie.

“Does anyone know what has transpired here beside you?” Lexa addressed Anya carefully standing from the floor waiting for any signs of dizziness but feeling none. Anya shook her head “Only I followed you here, but I sent out warriors to bring Arla back” now she was immensely glad she had not thought to alert Titus already.

“Arla?” Lexa asked confused not being familiar with the name at the moment. “She was assigned as a handmaiden to Marie and me and has obviously given her the dagger” Anya answered pointing at the small dagger lying on a table.

Lexa looked at Marie the girl looked the very picture of misery. She crouched down in front of the girl to meet her eyes and when the girl did not turn her head to look at her she gently raised the girl’s chin ignoring the slight flinch at her touch to lock their eyes together. “The handmaid gave you the dagger?” Lexa questioned the girl in a clear voice laced with authority.

Marie nodded immediately her eyes glancing at Lexa’s exposed forearm through the sliced shirt sleeve “She said I was owed some blood by you and that a small cut would be enough to make it better…” The girl’s voice trailed off. “Make what better?” Lexa asked now still looking into the girl’s grey eyes intently. “That you left me …” the girl answered her eyes huge “… and that you stopped caring for me. Or lied … Or I didn’t understand really …”

Anya cursed lightly under her breath after she heard their charges answer. She should have never left the girl with the handmaid at all and trusted her instincts that had told her right from the start that something was off with the handmaid all along. It was obvious the words were not Marie’s own but into her mouth by another. She had known that the girl was hurt by what had happened but Arla had somehow deepened and twisted that hurt into something ugly she needed.

“I did not stop caring for you, Marie” Lexa said with a sigh laden with regret “I was at your bedside each night” the commander added as an afterthought.

“You were?” the girl checked awed her eyes widening in surprise when Lexa immediately nodded.

Marie started to cry again “Will I be executed now?” her voice sounded strangely hollow. Lexa shook her head although she felt a headache forming. As long as they managed to keep it quite that Marie had really managed to nearly kill her there was no reason to execute her. It was obvious that the girl had just been manipulated and would not have helped if she had known what she might cause.

“Why were you not surprised that she healed me?” Lexa asked Anya after a moment her mind whirling with questions and actions they needed to take now. “Because I had already seen her do something similar” Anya simply answered and mutely wondered why she had never told Lexa about what had happened right before the battle. But it had never come up in any conversation and since they arrived in Polis she had barely seen Lexa alone for more than a few moments and she had seen the commander’s form bending and her shoulders drooping under the pressure of keeping the coalition together and had not wanted to add even the smallest burden onto that.

Before Lexa could implore further a guard knocked on the door saying that the warriors had already found Arla trying to slip out of the city.

“Bring her into the dungeons” Lexa ordered immediately her green eyes flashing dangerously “I will be there shortly”.

“What happens to me now?” Marie asked and Lexa spotted the pain standing for so long had caused the girl.

“You will wait here with Anya” Lexa said and nodded to her former mentor. Anya shortly spoke with Lexa in hushed tones too low for Marie to hear “What will you do about her?” the woman wanted to know. “Nothing” Lexa said looking over to Marie shortly her eyes showing a mixture of compassion and regret “I cannot fault her for being hurt. A young wounded soul is easily manipulated and she reversed the damage somehow in the end.” Anya nodded feeling relieved and watched Lexa’s persona change. Gone was the soft young woman who had too much compassion in her still, replaced by the mask of the hardened commander who strode from the room in long purposeful strides. The general gently guided Marie to the commander’s bed “Lie down” she directed and watched as the girl slip under the furs still crying slightly. It only took her a few moments to fall into an exhauster sleep as the events of the last hours had drained her completely. Anya sat down on the side of the bed and watched Marie sleep. Even in slumber her young face was scrunched up with troubles and Anya gently took one of the girl’s hands and made soothing motions over the girl’s knuckles and the frown disappeared from her face settling more deeply into sleep.

On her way to the dungeons Lexa made a short stop in her throne room where the ambassadors and Titus were still waiting for her return. She dismissed them all, cancelling the meeting for the day to be reconvened tomorrow at the same time. She could see confusion filter over the faces of those gathered on the room and some even looked worried, if for her or worried that she was still alive she did not know at the moment. Obediently the ambassadors together with their guards left the throne room without question; something in her face must have already told them that now was not the time to test her patience. The commander halted Titus retreat as he was the last to leave the room. The bald man was obviously confused but he stayed silent waiting for her to tell him what had caused the interruption. Their interactions had been strained in the last days, Lexa becoming increasingly impatient every time he dared to disagree with her. Lexa’s mood had worsened with every day the ambassadors kept on nagging her to attack Skykru and Titus had sided with them, in private only of course.

“Gather the novitiates in one of the save quarters and have them under heavy guard until you get other orders” Lexa addressed her former teacher who looked at her expectedly.

Titus eyebrows shot up in surprise. As the flamekeeper he knew exactly what must have happened for the commander to demand the conclave to be protected “Are you hurt, Lexa?” the man asked his commander worry shining in his dark eyes falling back into the habit of calling her by her name instead of title as if she was a small nightblood again under his tutelage.

Lexa shook her head in the negative “No, but until we know if only I was the target protect the novitiates.” The flamekeeper nodded with relieve flashing up in his dark eyes and swept from the room his dark garments sliding over the stone floor.

The commander quickly strode through the halls towards the elevator Gustus and Ryder joining her silently on her way. Their heavy footsteps resonating off of the walls were the only sounds in the empty halls only occupied by the occasional guard standing motionless at his post. This was not by far the first assassination attempt that had been conducted against her after she had taken up command but that someone had succeeded in engaging Marie alarmed Lexa deeply. And again she felt guilt course through her veins, as she was well aware that the sole reason the girl had even been open to this kind of manipulation this easily was solely resting on her own shoulders.

The ride with the elevator into the dungeons of the tower passed in a strained silence. Gustus could spot the tenseness in Lexa’s body and jaw, the commander’s slender finger toying with a dagger in obvious agitation. A nervous habit she had had since Anya had gifted her with her very first dagger. The general had tried to quell her nervous habit at first interpreting it as a sign of weakness but after others had interpreted as a nonchalant sign of strength Anya had bugged of. 

The commander was shown to one of the holding cells of the dungeons wordlessly a silent anger radiating from her features. She could see the form of a young woman huddled on the floor in the far corner of the small cell. Lexa scrutinized the young woman for a moment but she was not personally familiar with this handmaid. Gustus had supplied that she had taken up to work at the tower during her absence from Polis. Irritated Lexa wondered why an unexperienced handmaid with only a few weeks of history in the tower had been assigned to work for Anya at all; she had always been clear to post only those she trusted in the vicinity of her general and other important figures. This opened the possibilities or rather she was already sure that the girl had not been the sole head of this assassination attempt as she lacked the influence.

The commander roughly shoved the cells door open making the bars connect with the wall loudly startling the girl huddled on the floor. The handmaiden’s eyes snapped up at her and widened almost comically when she recognized who had come into her cell. Horror etched onto the young woman’s features and her body tensed when she came to the obvious conclusion that Marie had obviously failed to poison the commander.

“Who are you and why do you wish for my death?” Lexa immediately questioned the girl at her feet glaring down at her fury dancing in her blazing eyes. She wanted to give the girl a chance to tell her the truth without force before imploring any torture; the girl seemed to be frightened enough already to loosen her tongue enough.

The girl swallowed audibly a few times making herself smaller before she answered in a wavering small voice “I am Arla and I just wanted to save my brother…”

Lexa’s brows furrowed as she asked “Who has blackmailed you?”

The girl shook her head a few times begging silently for leniency clearly more afraid of whoever had made her willing to commit in this plot. Lexa nodded to Gustus who quickly stepped up to the girl hitting her roughly a few times and hurling her upright again into a sitting position. A bruise was now forming around the girl’s left eye and blood flowed freely from a split lip. Lexa arched her brow at the girl in silence the question still needed an answer.

But the handmaid remained stoically silent just shaking her head with a few tears running down her cheeks. Lexa watched on impassively as Gustus continued hitting the girl again until she could barely keep her head up anymore. “Who has worked with you of the tower’s staff?” Lexa changed her question now hoping to have more willing to give an answer to this.

The girl’s eyes were nearly swollen shut when she looked up at the commander with obvious great effort names finally spilled out of the girl’s mouth. Lexa ground her teeth together angrily. She knew the three names the girl had given well.

 

Chapter 62

One was of a general who had taken up the duty to organize the guard around the tower, the second was of a guard usually posted on her own floor and the third was the name of a woman responsible with assigning and organizing the handmaidens of the tower.

The girl willingly told her why Marie had been chosen as the target to implement the assassination attempt. Lexa had already guessed that it was for the simple reason that the girl had the possibilities to get close enough to the commander to cause an injury which was confirmed by Arla. The young handmaiden also told her what she had told Marie and how she had simply twisted and enhanced the hurt that had already been caused by the commander’s actions at the Mountain. But as soon as her questions had circled back on the real head behind this assassination attempt the girl closed off again no matter what Gustus did.

“You will be executed with them tomorrow when the sun sets” Lexa said to the girl and swept from the room. It was obvious the girl would not give up whoever had blackmailed her and Lexa now had three more people to interrogate. Both the head of her guard and the head of the tower’s staff had some influence in Polis but Lexa knew that they had both served at least the commander who had held her position before her so she doubted they would have personal motivations against her to want for her death.

Gustus followed her out of the cell locking it after his exit whipping his bloodied fingers on a piece of cloth. Lexa addressed the man locking her eyes with him “Find all connections to Arla and those she named that could have had a hand in this”. The burly man nodded and Lexa returned into the elevator shadowed by Ryder.

She shortly checked in with her novitiates. The nine children all seemed worried, as they were only herded into one of the easily protectable rooms of the tower whenever they might be in danger. They smiled at her when they saw her entering the room. Titus stepped up to her and demanded to know what was going on.

Lexa sighed lowly quickly filling the bald man into the events of the night carefully leaving out the fact that Marie had indeed wounded her with a poisoned blade and somehow healed her before her death stressing the fact that obviously quite a few people were involved in this.

“All of the tower’s staff need to be evaluated for their loyalty again” Lexa concluded “Alira will be promoted to organize the tower’s staff, she is the only handmaiden I trust without a shadow of doubt”. Titus nodded he shared the opinion the commander had regarding Alira as being trustworthy and it was worrisome that a plot against the commander had been spun without any detection by him.

“You can all return to your quarters now” Lexa addressed her nightbloods watching them file out of the room one by one nodding to her before they left. Her heart felt slightly lighter knowing that her novitiates were protected and all unharmed. She wondered which clan was the mastermind behind this plot, she expected to find the culprit within the ranks of the Ice Nation but there was always a chance for someone else, someone they had not thought of.

She returned to her own quarters noticing that some guards had already been removed from their posts. Those who were missing were mostly originated from different clans and mostly only warriors from Trikru filled the halls at the moment.

Ryder took up post in front of Lexa’s quarters as the commander strode into the room softly closing the doors behind her. Lexa could make out Marie’s small form under some furs inside of her bed with Anya sitting on a stool next to the bed. The general looked up at her and crossed the distance between them with a few silent steps.

She could easily identify worry in Anya’s brown eyes and Lexa repeated the names Arla had given her and how the young woman had stoically not given up the mastermind behind the whole plot. Anya’s brows furrowed learning from who had been identifies to have a connection already. Given that two of the three names belonged to people with much influences for all they now knew anyone in the tower and even some of the army could be compromised already.

“I want you to stay in Polis permanently again” Lexa said searching her older mentor’s face intently. Anya nodded even as Lexa’s personal advisor she had expected to reside within the capitol from now on, it would make training Marie, once the girl had recovered completely, easier as well. “Take up the position of head of the army” the commander offered the other woman hoping that she would agree. Anya blinked a few times not having expected that at all but she nodded nevertheless, she would do all in her power to secure Lexa’s place as commander.

Marie started to stir lightly buried under the furs which felt like hands restraining her within her nightmares. Anya strode over to Marie taking some of the furs of off the girl’s slight frame and gently letting her fingers glide over the girl’s hair soothing the girl back into a deeper slumber.

“And Arla has told you how she manipulated Marie?” Anya said sitting down on the edge of the bed while Lexa began to pace through the room her footfalls muted by the pelts laid out on the floor around the huge bed. The commander nodded “She said that she had weaved a lie around herself convincing Marie that she had once held my trust and been discarded by me in a similar fashion to what I have done to Marie at the Mountain”. Anya cocked her brow at Lexa “Have you known the girl at all?” The commander shook her head and sighed “No, I had never even met her. But I wonder how the girl could have known the details of what had transpired in front of the Mountain.” Anya nodded thinking for a second “Either someone within the group of warriors who have accompanied you and been with you when the deal was proposed to you has spoken with her or she may have heard enough of the conversations I had had with Marie to piece the story together herself”.

“Maybe we will know more in the morning” Lexa commented her mind reeling around quickly. The warriors who had been with her on the ridge to take out the soldiers of the Mountain had all been selected by herself, but even the most trustworthy warrior could have been bribed or blackmailed somehow or even giving up the story under the influence of too much alcohol in one of the taverns in Polis. Marie had slept for the first days making it impossible for Arla to start influencing her which would have given her enough time to gather information elsewhere.

Her thoughts drifted back to the magical healing Marie had somehow been able to conduct. Lexa had already felt her limbs becoming cold as her heart pumped her blood slower with every second. When the girl’s fingers had touched her wound it felt as if she had been burnt and liquid fire had cursed through her veins until Marie had broken the contact again.

“Titus might know more of the talent Marie seems to possess” Lexa mused looking down at the girl whose features were even in sleep showing her trouble etched into a permanent pained frown.

Anya grunted not really agreeable in telling the bald flamekeeper “I don’t know if it is wise to bring him into the loop. I do not trust him.”

Lexa slightly rolled her eyes. Her former mentor and her teacher had never seen eye to eye in anything before. Anya had always disapproved with the way the flamekeeper taught the novitiates often resorting to physical punishments for disobedience. The man had often enough been harder on her than he had been with the others spotting something special in the scrawny girl Lexa had once been. And Lexa knew she had not been an easy student contradicting her teacher in many of his teachings being too stubborn to simply accept his words even faced with physical punishments. Anya may have never been gentle with her but the woman had also never simply hit her for the sake of hitting her. The woman had had always been inventive with other ways of punishing her for disobediences mostly humiliating her in some way and teaching her on why the rules she had broken were important which all in all had always been way more effective then Titus’ approach.

But something told her to trust Anya on this one and not tell Titus at least not at the moment so she nodded. Maybe it would be wiser to see what Marie was able to do exactly at first anyway.

“Do you know what limitations her gift has?” Lexa asked Anya. The older woman shook her head “No, I have just seen her healing a patch of flowers that had been trampled down carelessly by someone”.

“Flowers?” the commander inquired with a raised brow. That matched way better with the gentle child he had come to know than the fury she had been face with earlier.

Anya chuckled lowly at the memory “And the flowers had seemed to bend in her direction once they had stood unscathed again”. Lexa looked at her former mentor in surprise, she had never heard of something like that before.

Anya shrugged her shoulders mutely not knowing how the flowers had done that or if had just been a trick of her vision and the wind “Do you feel any effects of poison still?”

Lexa immediately shook her head “No, I feel absolutely fine. Rested and energized even. Has Marie tried to heal her own wounds?”

Anya blinked a few times not even having thought about the possibility that Marie might be able to do exactly that “Not that I am aware of at least. And we did not have the opportunity to test her abilities either.”

“We will, once she wakes” Lexa said. A gift like that held an immense power after all.

“Do you still trust her?” Anya asked her voice sounding uncharacteristically unsure.

Lexa nodded without hesitation “She has a kind soul, which has simply been misguided in difficult times. If she still wants revenge against myself that will be a problem, but I highly doubt that she will. I doubt revenge was anything she really sought after at all.”

Anya nodded feeling a burden lift she had not felt at all before as she let her fingers glide through the blonde locks of hair again gently. The girl started to stir under her gentle touch and blinked her eyes open after a few moments.

Marie looked confused of the unfamiliar surroundings at first until she spotted the commander and the events of the last few hours came back to her grey eyes widening in horror. Her breathing becoming erratic. Lexa shooed Anya from the side of the bed wanting to calm the girl herself the whole situation had gotten out of control because she had not taken the time to speak with girl before after all.

But Lexa getting nearer at first actually had the reverse effect and Marie seemed to have trouble breathing at all now. Lexa forcefully took one of the girl’s hands and laid it against her own chest letting the girl feel her heart beat under her palm “Breath with me, Marie. In … and out … in … and out” she repeated that for a few moments until the girl had obviously calmed considerably “That’s it. Just continue to breath”.

After Marie had finally calmed down silence settled over them, the girl obviously not daring to say anything at all. But Lexa interpreted that the girl had not tried to pull away her hand still laying on Lexa’s chest as a good sign. But Lexa waited the girl out being way more patient.

“Won’t I be executed?” the girl asked in a small voice wondering why she was still in a comfortable bed and not incarcerated in a cell in some dungeon.

Lexa shook her head sighing mutely and answered simply “No, you will not.”

“I almost killed you” Marie whispered her eyes glistening with unshed tears widened in horror at the memory resurfacing of what had nearly happened only a few hours ago. Marie felt slightly angry at Arla for she had not told her that the dagger was poisoned. She mutely wondered if she would still have tried to harm Lexa if she had indeed been aware of that, but she mentally shook her head vigorously. The commander may have left her but she did not feel the urge to kill the other woman for it.

The commander gave the girl’s hand a gentle squeeze “But you did not, or rather you chose to heal me before I could actually die. Do you wish for me to bleed for you?” Anya stood slightly behind Lexa watching mutely her brow furrowed unsure where the commander was going with the conversation. The woman caught the confusion reflecting over their charge’s face at the question but no anger or fury was evident.

Marie immediately shook her head now trying to pull her small hand out of Lexa’s grasp. Lexa let go of the girl’s hand and took one of the daggers strapped to her own thigh and cut her own hand in her open palm black blood welling up immediately as she had already cut deeper now then the girl had wounded her previously.

“Does seeing me bleed make you feel better?” Lexa challenged the girl her voice sounding aggravated “If it does, I am willing to offer you more of my blood.” With her words Lexa moved her bleeding palm in front of Marie’s face so that the girl did not have any other chance then to look at the wound. But Marie only continued to shake her head frantically. Lexa had watched the girl’s eyes intently and could not detect any dishonesty in them so she pushed the dagger back into its sheath and lowered her hand again.

“You are bleeding” Marie stated the obvious once Lexa had closed her hand to a fist and the black blood had immediately started to seep through her fingers.

“Then heal the cut” Lexa invited the girl and offered her injured hand palm up to the child. Lexa knew this was a long shot, it was entirely possible Marie would not be able to use this mystery power on command. Marie blinked in confusion at the commander unsure if she even could. “Just try it” the woman encouraged their charge in a soft tone wanting to know where the child’s ability was restricted to.

Cautiously Marie took Lexa’s hand in hers the small fingertips barely touching her skin as if afraid her touch would cause Lexa pain. Anya watched on curiously over Lexa’s shoulders at what would happen now.

For a few seconds nothing happened and Lexa had already wanted to withdraw her hand and bandage the shallow cut when Marie had closed her eyes and the small fingers tightened around Lexa’s hand. Marie concentrated on wanting to ease Lexa’s pain and to make right again what looked wrong at the moment. The girl’s face looked completely relaxed and her breathing was even and deep when her fingertips suddenly seemed to emit a soft golden shine and Lexa again felt the cut she had placed knit itself back together is if sewed together by liquid fire.

The very moment Marie opened her eyes again her fingers lost their golden shine as well and the girl looked down at Lexa’s once again unscathed palm in open wonder. Anya and Lexa both were impressed as well.

“This is truly amazing” Lexa said flexing her hand slightly not even a small scar showed it was as if there had never even been an injury at all. She turned a bit to face Anya “The healing hurts slightly, as if fire heals the wound. But they are restored completely obviously” she turned back to Marie “Have you tried to heal your own injury?”

The girl blinked owlishly for a moment before she shook her head with an expression that clearly showed that she had not even thought about it until now. Marie carefully slipped her finger under the bandage still wound around her hip and tried to find the same concentration and feeling she had just used using the cut for Lexa but nothing happened. A disappointed frown settled over the girl’s features after she gave up a few moments later.

“Maybe you are restricted to solely healing others” Anya mused interpreting the girl’s disappointed expression at a failure to heal herself. Marie nodded with a slight pout while Lexa said “Regardless this is an extremely rare and powerful gift.”

Anya nodded while she could not shake away the feeling that they should try to keep this talent hidden when she voiced her thought Lexa nodded. Marie cocked her head in confusion “But could I not use that to help others?”

The commander nodded as she had felt how close she had been to death a few hours ago. If the girl were to fall into the hands of for example the ice queen, the girl could easily be forced to heal many warriors unbalancing any wars in favour of those who held control over Marie. Lexa tried to explain exactly that to the girl and Anya backed her up on that possibility. People might try to capture her just for her power or even kill her in hopes of gaining such a talent themselves. Although she thought that scenario was highly unlikely but she could already picture Titus trying to get her to kill Marie just for the slight chance.

“And we do not know yet if there might be any side effects or repercussions later for you” Lexa finished her explanation and the girl nodded still frowning slightly. The commander had wanted to talk with the girl about the events at the Mountain but thought that now was not the time to do so. Maybe it would be good for the girl to first see some of Polis to understand why she really had had no other choice.

Marie started to wiggle under the furs obviously uncomfortable somehow “What is it?” Lexa asked the child and Marie said almost desperately “I need to pee really urgently…” The girl’s face flamed red with obvious humiliation but Lexa ignored that reaction offering her hands to hoist the girl up “Let me show you to the bathroom then.”

After having guided Marie to the bathroom making sure the girl did not stumble on the way Lexa returned to Anya having given Marie the orders to call out once she was finished. “The healer had said that her wounds seem finally to heal fine and she thinks that the girl should not have any lasting damage” Anya reported to Lexa her relieve at being able to rely something positive for once palpable. The girl’s steps were still unsure and her hip still hurt slightly but it should not be long for the wounds to close completely now. “But all the training progress Marie had made are void now. She is even weaker physically now” Anya surmised annoyance obvious.

Lexa just sighed lowly “As long as she does not have any lasting damage that is no problem. With regular training she will improve quickly enough. But she first needs to regain some strength. Once she is better on her feet you should show Polis to her” Anya arched a brow at Lexa inquiring without words why Lexa would not do so herself.

The younger woman huffed knowing immediately what Anya’s mimic implied “I will show her some things myself when I have the time.”

Marie called out from the bathroom obediently in that moment and Lexa went to retrieve the girl letting her walk on her own only walking beside her cautiously to be able to catch her if needed.  She had guided the girl back to her bed and Marie asked confused “Should I not return to our room?” glancing at Anya shortly.

“Not right now” Lexa answered “More people than just Arla were involved in the plot against me and until I know exactly who I can trust in the tower you will both remain here”. Anya looked at the commander with a doubtful expression but nodded when she caught Lexa’s clearly pleading gaze to just indulge her in this.

“I will sleep on the couch then” Anya offered and turned to the huge piece of furniture. Lexa offered to instead sleep there but the older woman just stared her down for a moment and Lexa threw up her hands in the air in mock surrender making Marie giggle slightly. A soft smile tugged at Anya’s lips not having seen the girl express any kind of joy since before the Mountain really. Maybe this escalation had been exactly what Marie needed to finally heal completely from the whole ordeal.

Lexa knew she would be too optimistic to think that Marie would now simply forget her decision at the Mountain but the anger and hate had faded completely from the girl’s grey eyes. When Marie made to stand up to search another place to sleep Lexa gently pushed the girl down more firmly into the bed “The bed here offers more than enough space for two”.

The girl nodded obviously not completely comfortable with the situation if Lexa interpreted her quick gaze in Anya’s direction correctly. Trust would need to be rebuild from both of their sides which would just take time.

Marie tried hard to keep as much to the other side of the bed as possible. Lexa snorted under her breath if the girl were to turn just a slight bit she would fall right of the bed and tumble to the floor, at least the floor was layered with pelts of her hunts. The girl was as tense as a deer preparing to leap out of harm’s way if needed. Through the few candles still burning in the huge room Lexa could see through the corner of her eye’s that the girl had her eyes vehemently open and was shooting glances at her every few seconds.

The commander could hear Anya’s soft regular breaths evening out signalling that the other woman had already fallen asleep. “Come closer” Lexa softly said opening her arm to give the girl the possibility to scoot closer and added “only if you want of course”. Marie startled in surprise at the kind words looking at Lexa’s form in the almost darkness making it impossible for her untrained eyes to see the woman’s expression but she remained where she was.

Lexa sighed silently pulling her arm back over her midriff and rolled slightly on her side turning her back to the girl. She closed her eyes and deepened her breath trying to fall asleep quickly. On the verge of falling asleep for good Lexa startled a bit when Marie suddenly addressed her in almost a whisper “I am sorry … truly … I didn’t want to hurt you like this …”

“It is ok” Lexa answered turning around to the girl’s body “I understand that you are angry with me”

“You left me…” Marie breathed with a voice laced with bewilderment.

Lexa took a deep breath, she had not planned to have this conversation in near darkness and in the middle of the night when they both were tired. But she sensed that the girl would not find rest with this situation hanging between them. She let the proceedings of the Mountain flash before her eyes shortly, remembering the way the Marie’s grey eyes had looked at her and how the girl had screamed for Anya to help her, how her mentor had stood there like a statue made of even marble. “I did” Lexa answered her voice heavy “I wish I could have chosen differently but I could not.”

“Why not?” Marie asked wanting desperately to understand the woman.

“I am the commander, Marie” Lexa explained her voice heavy remembering all the times she had push her own desires and well-being to the side to become the commander she was now “I cannot chose what I want, but I always have to choose what the right thing is for my people. The Mountain had over two hundred of my people captured and they threatened to destroy the capitol with one of their missiles. As the commander I could simply not chose you over thousands of others…”

“I don’t understand that …” Marie answered after a moment her voice laced with frustrated confusion “Aren’t you like the most powerful leader here?”

“Yes” Lexa reassured her, there was no question to her power. Theoretically she could have of course declined the offered deal and continued their fight against the Mountain. Together with Skykru they could have even won against the Mountain but there would have been heavy losses on her side and there had been no guarantee that they would have even won. All her prisoners would have been executed, just like that, and if the Mountain’s threat was valid, then Polis would have been burnt to the ground. “But being powerful does not mean that you can use all that power just to your liking, Marie. A good leader has to use that power to ensure the safety of their subjects. The leader is the one who has to bear the brunt of the decisions. When Costia’s head was delivered to me, I wanted nothing more than to raise my whole army and lay waste to the Ice Nation…” Lexa’s words trailed off and she clenched her hands angrily reliving the feeling of utter loss when she had looked into Costia’s lifeless eyes.

Lexa could feel the girl’s eyes fixed onto her face in the near darkness waiting for her to continue. She had not managed to form the coalition back then but she had given in to the thirst of revenge. “I did use my power then. I raised an army and marched towards the Ice Nation and I burnt down every village passed the border to the Ice Nation. But we were ill prepared for the winter. Many of my men died long before we could reach the capitol of the Ice Nation. But I kept pushing them on, fuelled by blind rage. When we finally reached the capitol the Ice queen was awaiting me. I had already raised my sword to strike her down, when she bowed to me, pledging herself to the coalition…”

Marie sucked in a harsh breath feeling the pain in Lexa’s voice. She knew that the Ice Nation was part of the coalition, so that meant that Lexa had accepted the Ice queen even after what she had done. Lexa was battling tears of her own. She still felt the surging need to drive her sword through the woman that had ordered Costia’s abduction and death but she had sacrificed her own revenge for the good of her subjects. She had proven on the Mountain that she would always sacrifice herself if needed.

“And who looks after what you want?” Marie wondered out loud but she truly understood now why Lexa had chosen like she had.

Lexa blinked astonished at the smaller body next to her. One of the first teachings of Titus had been that what a nightblood wants would never matter and that they had to sacrifice themselves for their people solely being a vessel for the commander’s spirit and nothing more. She startled slightly when Marie suddenly crawled over to her closing the distance between them and snuggled up to her like she had done when they had shared a bed in her tent. Mutely she pulled the smaller body closer into herself hugging Marie closer.

 

 

Chapter 63

They were aroused early by a series of loud knocks on the door to the commander’s quarters. The door flew open only a few moments later and Titus strode in. Anya had sprung from the couch sword drawn and Lexa had also quickly stood from the bed pulling a long dagger out of hiding place.

Marie sat upright in the bed her eyes wide looking for a possible threat. Anya growled under her breath after she had recognized Titus. The man had already seen Marie in the commander’s bed which she had obviously shared with Lexa his eyes narrowing angrily.

“What brings you here this early?” Lexa addressed her former teacher calmly putting the dagger back into its place and starting to dress for the day also the sun had not even started to rise yet. The commander was pretty sure Titus had come with information on who was involved in the assassination attempt from the previous day but she never liked how the man always just barged into her chambers no matter what time it was.

“Manja confessed to have been blackmailed by Soy” Titus answered anger evident in his voice “Guards are bringing him into the dungeons as we speak.”

Lexa clenched her teeth seething mutely as she hastily went around the room fixing her commander attire to her frame. Soy was the ambassador of the Rock Line clan. She had already guessed that one or more clans had to have been involved in the plot. The question now was if the chief of the clan was also involved or if the ambassador had worked alone.

“What happens now?” Marie lowly asked Anya who had stepped towards the bed to help Marie back on her feet. The girl still had the most problems with the first few steps her muscles having grown even weaker over the long days of mostly sleeping under the effects of the tea.

“Anya, I leave it in your hands to evaluate all the guards posted around the tower from the scratch again” Lexa interrupted the general before she could answer “Marie can come with me”

Anya looked at her former second with a raised brow as she was not really agreeing to have the girl included into this. Marie had never witnessed torture of any kind and the general highly doubted that Soy would just spill his guts like that without some prompting.

“Showing him that their plot failed and showing myself together with Marie underlining that she still holds my trust, may surprise him enough to make him slip” Lexa quickly explained interpreting her mentor’s face correctly.

Titus had watched the interaction with narrowed eyes, he had also interrogated the handmaid again hearing from her what Marie’s role should have been in the whole plot “Arla told me he had given a poisoned dagger to her” he said glancing sideways at Marie.

Lexa nodded while Anya also put back on the light armour she wore when in the city signalling her station as Heda’s general. The commander went over to a table and cautiously picked up the dagger in question offering the blade to her old teacher. The man took the blade and also sniffed at the metal his face scrunching up identifying the poison immediately “She has not tried to harm you then?” he directly addressed Lexa.

The commander could see Marie biting her lips nervously and before the girl could speak up she stared down Titus “Obviously. You know how deadly the poison is, even the antidote would probably not have saved me otherwise.” She could feel Titus eyes searching her face for a lie but she had long mastered the art to conceal all that she felt even from him and the logic that she would be dead if Lexa had indeed been harmed was proof. The commander had no intention of telling the bald man about Marie’s healing powers just yet.

“When are the clan’s chiefs expected to arrive in Polis?” Lexa asked after a moment of tense silence. “Most have already arrived. Shallow valley and Broadleaf clan will arrive today. Rock Line clan and Ice Nation, as well as Trikru are the only ones that won’t arrive until the first day of the feast” Titus answered. Indra was still occupied with overseeing the restoration of TonDC and Rock Line clan and Ice Nation had a long way to travel and queen Nia liked to antagonize her at every possible turn.

Lexa thought in silence for a second before she instructed “Let the Rock Line delegation arrive without any interference. As soon as they step inside the tower, have all of them restrained to their assigned quarters and put under guard but be sure no others will notice anything is off. And have all clan leaders as well as the ambassadors watched. I want to know exactly who speaks with each other when they think no one is watching”. Titus nodded quickly while he already started to plan what would the necessary steps to take were now.

The commander sorted through a chest filled with some of her old clothes she had kept looking for things that might fit Marie. The girl’s dark trousers would do but not the light tunic the healer had dressed her in to make long times in bed more comfortable. She found a sleeveless shirt that was too small for herself, Lexa knew it would be slightly too long and lose on the girl but it would do. She handed the shirt to Marie who obediently stripped out of the tunic not even minding Titus in the room.

The man noticed the tattoo on the girl’s back immediately “You have her marked already?” his voice sounded baffled. Lexa nodded not giving more up Titus would have to accept Marie’s role now.

The top hung loosely on Marie’s small frame and Lexa slung a belt around the girl’s waist gathering the too long material up. She quickly turned the girl around and braided her long blond hair into a single braid easily revealing the signs marking Marie as the commander’s second easily and securing the braid with a thin strip of leather.

Lexa watched Titus clenching his teeth mutely for once wisely swallowing down his anger. She wasn’t in the mood to be criticized by him at the moment and the man seemed to sense as much.

They left the room and stepped into the elevator together. Marie looked wary of the contraption, she was familiar with elevator as they had some on the Ark but they were all powered by electricity and went smoother. “I thought there was no electricity” Marie said out loud eying the walls of the elevator suspiciously. “There isn’t” Lexa confirmed containing an amused chuckle at the girl’s obvious discomfort “Warriors are powering the elevator with their strength”. The elevator stopped suddenly with a sudden movement making Marie squeal slightly, the door glided open and Titus left the elevator inclining his head to Lexa mutely.  Marie scrunched her brow after the elevator started again “How do they know where you want to leave?” Anya explained to her that they had developed a sort of a code using little bells that would also ring on a panel where the warriors were stationed. The code would then tell the warrior where the elevator was at the moment and how many people had just stepped into it and where they wanted to leave or if a part wanted to leave on a different floor. Marie looked impressed by that information but her discomfort was still plain to see on her face.

Anya left them two floors later and Lexa addressed Marie in a firm tone “You won’t need to say anything interrogate Soy, Marie. But let me stress again, that it is very important that you will not mention what really happened yesterday to anyone. The poison which was on the dagger acts so quickly that not even the antidote would have been able to save me. So no one will know what you really did and it should remain that way.” Marie nodded guiltily biting at her lips as her mind conjured the picture again of Lexa crumbling to the floor and how shocked the woman had looked in that moment. Lexa took a deep breath “You will also see a side of me now, which you haven’t before. I do not take pleasure in inflicting pain on others but sometimes torture is necessary to make someone talk truthfully”. Marie nodded again and as she looked at Lexa’s face it was as if she could witness the woman disappearing behind an expressionless mask of the commander. The girl straightened her own shoulders trying to calm her suddenly racing heart and hoping to conceal at least some of her open expressions from her face.

The rest of the ride in the elevator passed in silence and as soon as the doors had glided open Lexa already stepped out of the contraption her long red sash sliding over the rough floor. The commander felt anger curse through her own veins, not necessarily against the assassination attempt itself, having survived quite a few of them already, but that the culprits had managed to involve the still so innocent girl next to her angered her the most. And her conscience could not let go of the fact that she herself had been the one to give them the opportunity to corrupt Marie in such a way to begin with.

The dungeons were busier than the day before. It seemed that quite a few people had already been identified to have their hands in the organization of the plot. Some looked almost surprised to see the commander stride through the hallway between the holding cells. While others had dropped all pretence now and glared at the commander passing by them. Marie only quickly let her eyes glide over all the people held in the different cells. Some already sprouted visible bruises or bleeding welts while others looked unharmed still. Marie wondered if they had talked freely without the force of violence to loosen their tongues or if they had just not been interrogated just yet.

Lexa guided her steps to one of the biggest cells where she knew Soy would be held for her. Gustus awaited her arrival at the cell’s door his dark eyes sparked with surprise at seeing Marie behind her. The girl’s grey eyes widened visibly when she took in the blood sprayed on Gustus’ face and hands. She wondered silently how many people exactly the burly man had already questioned through the night. “Has he said anything yet?” Lexa asked in a clipped tone and Gustus shook his head in the negative “He has just demanded to know why he was held at all”. Lexa’s lips thinned at the answer but she nodded and she pushed the cell’s door open with more force then needed making the cell’s door again connect loudly with the wall.

Marie carefully looked around Lexa after the woman had entered the cell. She could see the form of a man sitting on a plain wooden bench in the corner of the cell facing the entrance. The man visibly startled at the loud noise and looked up. He had light brown hair which was braided on the top in thin braids passing down his shoulders while the sides of his head had been carefully shaved revealing blueish tattoos on the skin. His skin was tanned strongly making it darker then Lexa’s tone and his eyes were also a bright grey.

“You can stop waiting for the signal to announce my demise” Lexa started staring down at the sitting man, from the corner of her eyes she could see Gustus giving Marie a slight push into the cell and closing the cell after he had entered. Soy’s eyes widened and he swallowed harshly when he noticed the girl easily identifying her as the commander’s second although no one except Arla had seen her in person yet, but the description the young handmaiden had given him matched perfectly. That the girl was standing with the commander and had not been thrown into a cell clearly indicated that their whole plan had failed. He had waited the whole night for the sound signalling that a conclave would be called soon. He had held onto the hope that the poison had simply worked slower than normal.

Lexa could almost see the wheels turning within the man’s head as understanding dawned on him.

“So let us begin with an easy question” the commander addressed the man with an almost bored tone fiddling with a dagger in between her slender fingers making the blade gleam with every spin as the metal reflected the light from the torches illuminating the cell “Who has worked with you?”

Marie watched as the man set his yaw defiantly clenching his teeth together clearly unwilling to give an answer to the commander’s question. The girl startled when Lexa suddenly stepped closer to the man hauling off and hitting the man square in his face with a balled fist. The force of the blow made Soy’s head snap back bouncing against the wall of the cell with a thudding noise. Blood immediately started to run from the man’s nose. Marie’s mind flashed back to the day she had first met Lexa and was grateful the commander had decided not to put her under torture.

Soy remained resiliently silent and Marie shuddered with every blow against the man’s face. Turning Soy’s face into a bleeding mess slowly. When the man disgorged a few teeth Marie had to swallow heavily against sour bile rising in her throat. After every blow Lexa would step back giving the man a few moments to decide if he wanted to give an answer now or not. The commander would massage her fingers making the knuckles creak loudly in a way that sent shivers down Marie’s back.

Lexa shortly looked to Gustus nodding to the man. Marie had no idea what the nod meant but the burly man obviously did as he immediately stepped into the other corner of the cell retrieving a small wooden block that had strains of what Marie guessed to be dried blood on its surface. The commander looked impatient her breathing laboured slightly. Lexa was irritated the man still had not said even a single word turning the anger rushing through her veins into hot cursing fire. They already knew quite a few names of who was also involved but what interested Lexa most was if other clans were also involved.

Soy obviously also knew the purpose of the wooden block and when Gustus grabbed him forcefully placing the man’s right hand on the wooden block and holding it there Marie could see how the man started to struggle against the hold.

Lexa had a dagger in her hand again and asked again “Who has worked with you?” At the man’s continued silence Lexa brought the dagger down quickly and forcefully onto the wooden block. The man’s little finger fell into the straw that littered the floor of the cell and the pain seemed to take a few moments to register in Soy’s mind.

Marie’s eyes had widened and the girl looked between the severed finger and the now profusely bleeding hand with shock written all over her face. But she kept silent just stepping a slight step back towards the door. Lexa noticed the girl’s movements out of the corner of her eyes but she did not mind if the girl wanted to leave at the moment or not.

It did not take Lexa long to remove Soy’s other fingers from the hand and when the man still remained silent Lexa snarled at him finally starting to lose her patience and composure “Why?! Why do you want me to fall?”

Something sparked in the man’s grey eyes and Lexa immediately interpreted that the man may have a very personal reason to want her dead. “You let her die” the man’s voice sounded hoarse when he finally spoke. Marie cocked her head and she saw the same confusion mirrored on the commander’s face.

“Who?” Lexa asked taking a step back from the man. Gustus had let go of the man’s hand and was heating another dagger to seal the wounds shut otherwise the man would soon pass out from the blood loss.

“You don’t know?” Soy croaked in a bitter tone. Lexa’s eyes narrowed dangerously and as she made to step up again to the man he continued with a hint of surprise “You truly don’t know. I have received the letter telling me of her death in a “hunt accident” two summers ago.”

Lexa’s eyes widened as she realized the connection. Two years ago a young nightblood had been brought to Polis. A girl with light brown hair barely six summers old. No one knew who her parents were but as she was to be trained for the conclave it didn’t matter. The girl had barely been in Polis for a few weeks when she sneaked away to join a hunting party. The girl had gotten lost in the forest and had been faced with a bear that had been wounded but not killed by the hunting party. She had tried to end the beast on her own and had not survived. She had succumbed to her severe injuries a few hours after being brought back to the tower.

“Amber” Lexa said below her breath. Soy raised his head blood dripping from his face onto his shirt “She was my daughter”.

Gustus came back to the man with the heated dagger and forced the gleaming blade onto the bleeding wounds. Marie had to breathe through her nose against the stench of burning flesh filling the cell. Lexa closed her eyes for a moment but all the compassion had left her features when she opened them again repeating the question of who was also involved in the plot in a seething tone.

“No other clan” the man finally spat at the commander.

Lexa believed him for now turning on the spot and storming out of the cell. Her thoughts were in turmoil. She had not been with the hunting party when Amber had died and it truly had been an accident but the way Soy had spoken the words full of accusation made it obvious that the man did not believe that at all. It was only a slight relieve to her to know that the fall of the Mountain had nothing to do with this plot, but she knew that it was only a matter of time before some clans would rise against her again now that their common enemy was defeated.

 

Chapter 64

Marie’s stomach churned when she followed Lexa through the corridor between the cells. She could see red blood dropping from the commander’s fingers but Lexa did not seem to notice or simply did not care.

Lexa would still have all the guard and the staff re-evaluated. Caution could not hurt and would make it harder for the next upraise against her. The commander did not look at any of the others that had been brought into the cell quickly striding back to the elevator. She impatiently waited for Marie to join her in the elevator. Lexa took a few deep breath to sort through her sorts and when she looked at the girl she could see pain evident on her face. The interrogation had taken a few hours and the commander noted that their second had managed to keep from vomiting although the girl looked slightly green in the face.

Gustus face showed the exhaustion the man was feeling. He had been on guard duty the morning before in front of Lexa’s quarters so he was on his feet for two days straight and interrogations tented to be taxing.

Marie was completely silent all the way up from the dungeons to the floor where Lexa’s quarters were. Lexa dismissed Gustus telling the man to rest before all clan representatives would be in Polis and all eyes and ears would dearly be needed again.

Alira had obviously already organised for food to be delivered to the commander’s quarters and the plates were still streaming indicating that they could not have been put there a long time ago. Lexa had guided Marie to the sofa and told her to sit and to start eating. The commander herself quickly excused herself to get cleaned up. She carefully scrubbed her fingers clean from all of Soy’s blood.

When she returned to the main room Marie sat perched on the edge of the sofa stiff and staring into nothing and the tray with food on the table remained untouched. Lexa sighed mutely unfastening her shoulder pauldron and draped the long red sash together with the pauldron over an empty chair in the corner of the room. Her fingers felt stiff and some of the knuckles were scraped dark bruises already forming under her skin. She massaged the fingers carefully making the knuckles crack again to set them right.

At the sound Marie visibly shuddered and stood up from the sofa suddenly swaying on her feet unsteadily as pain surged through her hip. Lexa moved quickly into her direction putting a hand on the girl’s arm to steady her. Without forewarning Marie doubled over and vomited all over the floor between them. Lexa’s lips thinned slightly in disgust when she saw that some of the vomit had sprayed onto her dark boots. Marie still looked green in the face and her frame was shaking so strongly Lexa could feel it through her fingers on her arm.

“It is ok, Marie” Lexa soothed the obviously shaken girl and led her to the bathroom. The shirt she had given Marie was obviously soaked in vomit as well. “Wait here” Lexa directed and pushed Marie to sit on a chair in the bathroom “If you have to vomit again” Lexa looked at the toilet. Marie nodded meekly visibly keeping her lips pressed together.

The commander left the bathroom with a few quick steps already hearing the sounds of the girl retching again. She quickly signalled for Ryder, who stood guard at her door with another Trikru warrior, to call for Alira. When Lexa returned to the bathroom Marie sat on the floor in front of the toilet only having dry heaves now. She knew that they had not had breakfast yet so the girl’s stomach could not have contained much.

Lexa knelt down next to Marie rubbing the girl’s back gently in a soothing motion. The girl turned her head into Lexa’s direction with the most pitiful expression the commander had ever seen and said in a small whiny voice “I will never make a warrior…” Lexa chuckled softly under her breath as she squeezed the girl’s shoulder reassuringly “The first torture is not an easy thing to witness. You have done better than you think”. Marie looked at her with doubt riddled eyes before she whipped her head back to the toilet retching again.

Lexa still remembered the first time she had watched Anya torture a spy from the Ice Nation they had found on a patrol. She had started to puke her guts out as soon as Anya had switched from using her fists to using a blade. Anya had teased her about her weak stomach for the next few weeks after she had held her hair back from her face while she vomited for hours.

She heard Alira’s voice calling for her from the main room and Lexa left Marie in the bathroom for now. The woman looked tired at the first glance but she smiled softly at Lexa “I heard there was an assassination attempt. I am glad it failed”. Lexa nodded “You have already been told that I want you to organize the household from now on?” Alira nodded in confirmation “I will of course still function as your personal handmaiden”.

“If that is not enough to manage at once?” Lexa inquired internally relived. She trusted the older woman beyond question not to try to temper anything in her quarters and she knew that Alira had taken a liking to Marie’s friendly nature. The handmaiden immediately assured that she would manage and that it was an honour for her to be put into this position.

Lexa wanted to give Alira further orders when retching noises from the bathroom interrupted her. “Is she sick?” the older woman immediately asked just now noticing the puddle of vomit on the floor in front of the sofa.

The commander shook her head “She has witnessed me interrogating Soy. Have a bath prepared for her, a tea to calm her stomach and she needs fresh clothes. And someone needs to clean that up”

Alira nodded immediately “Is the food still edible?” Lexa shortly looked at the tray of food but fortunately Marie had missed the table when she vomited so she nodded and Alira left to carry out all of the orders.

The door opened again and Anya stepped into the commander’s quarters her features showing her irritation clearly. “It went this badly?” Lexa commented picking a piece of bread from one of the plates and sipping some watered down wine.

The other woman snorted “That depends entirely on your definition” she plopped down onto one of the sofas taking a mug and starting to eat as well. Lexa quirked her brow at Anya in question who looked around the room clearly searching for Marie.

“In the bathroom” Lexa answered the unspoken question of her former mentor. The sounds of new retching confirming Marie’s presence and Anya placed the mug and the half eaten pastry back onto the table standing up to check on their charge. “She did not manage it any better than you did, then?” Anya inquired a slight tease glinting in her brown eyes. The commander ignored the playful jab “Oh, she did. She managed to hold it together until we came back here. But I would advise against cracking your knuckles in front of her for some time if you don’t want her to start vomiting”. “Duly noted” Anya retorted with a low snort and stepped into the bathroom where Marie was still sitting in front of the toilet on the floor.

She knelt down next to the girl and gently patted the girl’s back “You okay?” Lexa chuckled lowly at the question that even sounded idiotic in Anya’s own ears as Marie turned to Anya a scowl on her face that was softened by the otherwise pitiful expression and the greenish tint to her skin “Does it look like that?” the girl asked in a pouting tone. Anya could not help herself and shook her head laughing loudly “No…definitely not”. Marie glared slightly at the older woman but turned around rapidly to start retching again.

“Alira will bring you a tea to sooth your stomach” Lexa assured their charge motioning Anya back into the main room and commented “How very helpful of you”. Anya brought her laughter down to a chuckle “Don’t think you looked any better back then”.

Lexa resisted the sudden urge to stick out her tongue at the older woman and merely rolled her eyes. It was really a wonder Marie had found such a quick and deep connection to Anya, the woman sometimes really had a nature that lived on the humiliation of others.

After a short knock Alira entered the quarters again. The woman carried a mug that visibly steamed and had some folded clothes in the other hand. Other handmaidens entered the quarters all carrying various large buckets filled with hot water.

The older woman oversaw the younger handmaidens quickly filling the large metal bathtub and handed Marie the mug with the tea “Here, it will help settle your stomach”. Marie looked at the woman with a frown “I don’t think I can keep it down”. “Just try it” Alira ordered and pushed the mug in the direction of Marie’s mouth “I even added some honey to sweeten it just for you”. The girl smiled faintly in thanks at the woman and obediently drank a few sips of the tea waiting if her stomach would rebel immediately when nothing happened she drank some more of the warm tea.

“The bath is finished” a girl’s voice said and Marie assumed the girl could be the same age as her. Alira nodded to her and dismissed her with a wave of her hand. She offered her hand to Marie to haul her from the floor and Marie grimaced slightly when she put her weight back on her legs. She assisted Marie in stripping out of her clothes piling them on the floor to take them to be washed. She placed clean towels and the pile of fresh clothes onto the big sink. “Do you need help getting in?” Alira said finally still holding onto one of the girl’s arms as the child seemed to sway on her feet.

Marie looked at the bathtub and saw how high the rim was and nodded with obvious reluctance. “There is no shame in admitting to need help for something” Alira gently reproached the girl. Marie looked at her with big eyes but nodded mutely. In her mind it was contradicting to be told that strength was everything but that it was alright to ask for help. Alira let the matter go and carefully helped the girl into the tub making sure she would not slip.

Marie immediately let out a content sigh when her body was engulfed in the warm water. One of the handmaids had added some herbs to help with relaxing. “Do you want another tea?” Alira offered after Marie had downed the rest of the tea, Marie thought for a moment and politely declined as her stomach felt much better already.

Marie completely relaxed in the warm water never having experienced a warm bath before in her life. “Enjoying yourself?” Anya drawled leaning inside of the doorframe casually. Marie startled and looked around the room with widened eyes. Disoriented she rubbed her eyes and looked down at her pruned fingers with an odd expression. Marie had not noticed falling asleep at all and the water had cooled considerably and goose bumps were raised on her arms. She quickly tried to stand up in the tub immediately slipping on the wet surface and falling back into the water.

Lexa appeared behind Anya immediately checking the other woman had not decided to dump Marie under suddenly. When she had for some reason denied baths for the span of two weeks the older woman had simply bound her hands and feet and just thrown her into a bath still fully closed.

Anya was openly laughing at Marie’s shocked expression when the girl came back up sputtering water. Lexa quickly stepped up to her and hurled the girl out of the water like she weight nothing. Marie almost slipped again on the wet tiles but Lexa kept a steadying hand on the girl’s elbow and engulfed her in one of the big towels Alira had put on the sink. The girl’s skin felt cold to the touch. “Have someone bring her tea” Lexa said to Anya who nodded her eyes still twinkling in amusement.

The girl shivered slightly so Lexa helped her dry up quicker. “So I take it, you enjoyed your bath?” Lexa asked in a gentle tone towelling down the girl’s legs. Marie nodded enthusiastically “I never had one before”. “You didn’t?” Lexa inquired “How have you washed yourself on the Ark then?”

“A bath would have used up too much water. Even showers were strictly restricted to once a week. Otherwise we had some kind of damp cloth with chemicals in them to sanitize skin” Marie explained “We did not really get dirty anyway”.

Lexa nodded still intrigued to hear of the completely different ways of living. But it was no wonder that Marie had been wary of open water as Anya had told her if she had no prior experience with the element at all.

“How does your hip feel?” Lexa asked when she helped Marie step into a fresh pair of trousers. “It still hurts but it gets better every day” Marie answered. Her stomach rumbled audibly and Lexa gave the girl a soft smile “Come, we saved you some food”.

Marie’s steps were slow but she had stopped swaying Lexa still stayed close to their charge just in case. The girl shivered in the cool breeze coming from the opened door to the balcony and Lexa wrapped her into a folded blanket made of fur and went to close the door. The commander hoped that by warming the girl up and having her drink some tea they could avert the cold she feared Marie might have already caught in the cold water.

Anya and she had simply forgotten the time discussing what Anya thus far had discovered in the ranks of the guard. It was alarming to hear how many would be easily swayed by money and were not loyal to Lexa as the commander at all. She wanted all of them replaced as soon as possible by those they were absolutely sure would be loyal to her no matter what might be offered to them.

Some of those which had been rescued from the Mountain had obviously expressed their desire to serve as guards to Lexa for freeing them detached from their clans. Maybe it would be a good idea to raise at least a small force of warriors which would serve the commander alone and not the clans they were born into. She would have to put some thought into that.

The girl’s soft voice pulled Lexa out of her thoughts when she asked “Would I have been tortured like that?” The woman knew immediately that Marie wanted to know what would have happened if she had died the evening before. Lexa sighed lowly and sat down on the sofa next to Marie pulling the blanket tighter around the girl’s small frame “Yes, you would have” she simply said. No one would have cared for Marie’s reasons had she been the one to assassinate the commander. “Not even Anya would have been able to safe you then, although I don’t doubt she would have tried” Lexa added after a moment. Marie swallowed harshly turning paler catching what Lexa had not voiced out loud. Anya felt deeply for the girl and would undoubtedly have tried to somehow safe Marie but that would have just put herself at risk as well probably ending in her own execution alongside Marie. Lexa looked at the girl with a gentle expression and swept a wet strand of hair from her face “Do not worry about what might have been, Marie” the commander advised the girl.

Anya returned a few moments later with a tray with a pot filled with tea and a small jar containing honey. She had fetched the tea herself and noticed that Marie was wrapped up in a fur blanket on the sofa still shivering slightly. “Was the water that cold?” the older woman asked worriedly gently laying a hand on Marie’s forehead to feel her temperature. She still felt a little too cold to the touch.

“What happens now?” Marie asked munching on some kind of meat. “I still have to speak with all of the guards from Desert Nation and Shallow Valley Clan and the Lake people” Anya answered “I will try to finish before the executions” the woman added addressing Lexa. The commander nodded “I have a training session scheduled with my nightbloods, you are welcomed to join us. Or you can stay here and rest, Gustus or Ryder could stay with you guarding you.”

“Oh, I want to come” Marie retorted immediately her grey eyes shining with enthusiasm.

 

Chapter 65

Lexa had not had much time thus far to spend with her novitiates after the return from the Mountain. The children all had been exited to hear that Lexa had taken a new second from Skykru and were awaiting impatiently to finally meet the mysterious girl. Lexa had not told Marie much about the novitiates only that there were seven of them who were old enough to take part in the conclave residing in Polis permanently and that they were being trained so that one of them would one day ascend after her death.

Marie looked around the tower with interest sparkling in her eyes. When Anya had brought here into the tower she had barely been conscious and earlier in the day she was to tense to really take in her surroundings. Some of the structures of the tower had either been destroyed by the bombs that ended the world or had been worn down by time while other things were completely intact. Marie wondered what the purpose of the tower might have been in the previous world. When she voiced her question Lexa also had no clear answer just knowing that all of the commanders had always resided within the tower.

Lexa had sent a guard to Titus to let him know that she wanted the novitiates to be brought to the throne room now. She had planned to take the nightbloods to a clearing to train them but she did not want to take Marie outside yet and she could always reschedule the training for another time.

She led Marie into her throne room and watched the girl take in the room. A red carpet lined the intricate tiles of the floor towards a throne which looked almost like the one Marie had already seen in Lexa’s tent. Thin curtains let some light through the large windows behind the throne and a huge amount of candles was distributed through the whole room some even hanging from huge chandeliers. Twelve chairs were placed in a round circle around the throne a big distance between the throne placed on a raised platform and the chairs. A variety of pelts laying underneath the throne and a circular stair led to an upper floor in the corner of the room.

“For what are the chairs?” Marie asked curiously letting her gaze flicker through the large room. Large flags dangled from the ceiling above the stairs each one showing a different sign. “Can’t you guess?” Lexa retorted sitting down on her throne and looking down on Marie who still stood in the middle of the room. Marie scrunched her brow in thought “Mmh” the girl hummed cocking her head slightly “For the different clans of the coalition?” she guessed after a moment. “Very good” Lexa commented in a praising tone.

The sound of footsteps resonated through the corridor and Marie turned around towards the sound. Titus led a group of children into the large room. None of them were talking but all were walking proudly keeping their head raised highly. The bald man’s dark eyes narrowed when the first thing he noticed was Marie standing in the throne room. Lexa quickly addressed the man before he could utter a single word “Thank you, teacher. You can go back to your duties now”. Titus swallowed visibly but nodded and bowed to the commander respectfully before leaving the room without another word.

It was obvious that her novitiates had already caught up with who Marie was and they looked her up and down curiously. “You are really from the sky?” Ryno addressed the older girl looking up at her with curious brown eyes. The boy had just arrived at Polis a few month ago born into the Broadleaf clan. Together with Kyla from the Boat People they were the youngest novitiates just five summers old and just starting their training with weapons. Marie nodded obviously quite shy now under the scrutinizing eyes of all those unfamiliar children. They had surrounded her in seconds and completely ignored Lexa’s presence except for Aden, Kato and Thalu the oldest nightbloods of the group.

Lexa cleared her throat loudly when the younger ones started to bombard Marie with one question after the other not even giving the girl the opportunity to answer the ones asked previously. Marie glanced thankfully at Lexa when she called the attention from all the children.

“Lexa” Thalu said softly stepping up to the commander’s throne. They had heard the guards gossiping about an assassination attempt, Aden had tried to calm the others telling them that Lexa was obviously fine. Although the nightbloods all knew that they were trained for the sole purpose to take up Lexa’s place after she fell that was nothing they wished for to happen soon. Lexa had always been kind and gentle with them and Aden still vaguely remembered the commander before Lexa and he had been anything but gentle. Aden had been too young when the previous commander died to take part in the conclave.  The girl’s light green eyes shone with compassion clearly searching Lexa’s body for injuries.

Lexa inclined her head towards the eleven year old girl signalling to her that everything was alright. “Novitiates” Lexa addressed the group of children calling their sole attention “I want to introduce you to Marie from Trikru born Skykru, second to the commander and the flame”.  Marie shyly averted her eyes to the floor after only a few seconds fidgeting nervously. Aden was the first of the group to recall his manners and he respectfully introduced himself in almost perfect English standing tall and proud. The others followed his example one by one politely introducing themselves, the younger ones had switched to their native tongues not feeling sure enough in the other language.

The commander silently noted the huge differences between Marie’s behaviour and how all of her nightbloods seemed way surer of themselves. Anya and she needed to work on Marie’s self-esteem quickly as all the ambassadors were sure to pounce on every bit of weakness Marie would present to them once she was healthy enough to stand through a meeting.

“Now I am sure Marie would be pleased to answer some of your questions” Lexa addressed the group of children. When all of them resumed their chaotic influx of questioned the commander silenced them again “Ask after each other and not all at once. And only ask one question, so think carefully what you want to know. Kyla, you may start”.

The small red haired girl shortly glanced at Lexa with sparkling blue eyes and a small smile on her round face revealing a gap where she had lost some of her baby tooth only recently. The girl was still very shy and Kyla cocked her head to the side thinking for a moment before she lowly asked “How is living in the sky different?”

Lexa could see Marie blinking at the small girl looking up at her expectedly. Kyla may be very young but she was wise beyond her years and from the way she spoke and how her mind worked Lexa herself always had to keep in mind how young the small girl really was.

“Well” Marie started to answer and stopped for a moment of contemplative silence “You can’t really live within the sky, so we lived on the Ark, a huge metal space ship” Kyla did not seem satisfied with the answer her small face scrunching up in a frown so Marie elaborated quickly “It was very small. And there were no trees, or animals, or nature really…”

The smaller girl cocked her head to the side “That does not sound very nice” her voice sounded almost pitiful. Marie just shrugged her shoulders silently not knowing what to answer to that assessment. The Ark had been everything they had known and they had simply not had another possibility prior to coming to earth.

Ryno was the next one who got to ask his question. The difference between the two youngest nightbloods could not have been greater. “Do the stars look nice up close?” “We actually were not that near to stars actually” Marie tried to explain “And they look very different from the earth”.

Others wanted to know more about the system of the Ark, about what people actually did and what they ate for example. The three oldest of them had already more of a strategical thinking and asked about their weapons, about their military forces and Aden wanted to know how their leader was chosen.

Marie tried to explain that the Ark had a council of representatives from all of the stations building up the Ark and that the chancellor, who was voted by the population, was the most powerful figure. The girl could not answer how the representatives themselves were chosen, she had simply been too young before she came into the skybox to know much about the political system.

As Marie grew more comfortable in the presence of the bunch of unknown children Lexa let her novitiates start another round of questions. All of them were eager to learn as much as possible about the foreign clan who had fallen from the sky. Marie’s smile vanished from her face when Saria asked after the other girl’s parents and if they liked the earth. “I don’t know” Marie said her eyes unfocused for a moment before she blinked and added lowly “They died before the Ark came to earth”.

Titus came back into the room in that moment and clapped his hands to get the attention of the nightblood children. All of them obediently turned to their mentor who only shortly glanced at Marie before the bald man led the group of children out of the room. Marie watched the others leave in a perfectly organized row not even chatting with each other, their heads held high proudly as they quietly followed Titus.

Lexa stood from her throne and looked out of the window for a moment, the sun was starting to set. “Come” the commander said to Marie “We must prepare”.

“Prepare for what?” Marie asked softly although she immediately fell into step slightly behind Lexa. Her hip was hurting pretty bad from having been on her feet for such a long time period and she had trouble keeping up with Lexa’s fast pace.

Lexa slowed her steps when she noticed the struggle on the girl’s face “The executions will start in less than two candle marks”. There was no need to clarify and she could see the girl swallowing harshly as Marie mutely followed her. “How does your hip feel?” Lexa asked her charge to distract her somewhat. “Hurts” Marie said truthfully a small wince visible now with every step she took. “I am sure the healer will have a tea to help with that” Lexa quickly reassured, she had never relied on any medications against pain always preferring the bite of the pain against the muddled mind most of the teas left.

“Will I need to participate?” Marie asked in an almost whisper once they had stepped into the elevator. “It is important that you do” Lexa answered looking down at the girl compassionately. Marie nodded although her shoulders drooped obviously anything but pleased with this answer.

Alira was still in the commander’s quarters when they entered and Lexa immediately asked the older woman for a tea to help with Marie’s pain. The handmaiden nodded and told Lexa she would send the tea.

Marie nibbled at a piece of bread not feeling hungry at all. Her stomach felt coiled tightly with apprehension of the upcoming execution. She could not help feeling that she should be with those waiting for their deaths right now while another part of her noted that she did not feel anything in particular about having to participate in the executions per se. Lexa had given up on trying to distract the girl with a conversation and quickly applied her typical war paint.

Anya stepped into the room a moment later looking slightly irritated and with a steaming cup in her hand. The woman pushed the mug forcefully into Marie’s hand when the girl did not react to her. With a furrowed brow she let the girl be for now and went over to Lexa who put the finishing touches to her war paint. “Did something happen?” Anya asked with a glance at Marie who sipped at the tea lost in her thoughts staring at the wall opposite of her with unseeing eyes.

“The upcoming executions have obviously riled her up” Lexa observed cleaning the brush she had used of the black coal “What can you say about the state of the guards?”

Anya huffed annoyance flashing in her brown eyes “The head of the guards really has succeeded in sowing doubt against you. Many are amongst the ranks of the guards who could be easily bribed and I have also found others quite openly opposing you. That the mountain has fallen seems to have crossed their plans but it would still be wise to exchange all who do not stand behind you steadfastly.” The commander nodded she had already expected this kind of outcome.

“The tea cannot help if you don’t drink it” Anya commented drily after she had applied her own war paint with a few quick swipes. Marie’s head wiped up as she looked to Anya with slightly widened eyes having been startled. “Stay still” Anya ordered and bent down to also apply the paint around Marie’s eyes in the way Lexa had done before their march on the Mountain.

“You will get through tonight” Anya said after she lowered the brush from the girl’s face “and you will wake up stronger tomorrow.”

Marie pulled her legs up on the couch slinging her arms around her knees with an obvious wince of discomfort. Her voice quivered slightly when she spoke up after a tense moment of silence, Anya and Lexa both giving the girl the time she obviously needed to sort through her thoughts. “I can’t stop thinking that I should be there…”

Anya looked confused at the words while Lexa clenched her teeth mutely. The leader had a better understanding of the girl’s way of thought at the moment and the guilt Marie was feeling was painfully clear in her big grey eyes. “There will be no tree for you, Marie” Lexa said in a strong tone that signalled finality. The older woman huffed when Marie looked at Lexa like a deer spotted by a pack of wolves. Marie looked away after a moment of trying to hold both of their scrutinizing gazes directing her eyes to the floor in obvious shame.

When Anya opened her mouth to say something Lexa quickly shook her head silencing her former mentor. She knew that words would not be able to convince the girl. Lexa hoped that with the executions Marie would also be able to close the matter in her mind and to find peace with what she had nearly done.

The commander and Anya ate a bit of the food in companionable silence. Lexa stood up from the couch and nodded to Anya that it was time now. The older woman offered a hand to Marie and squeezed the girl’s fingers reassuringly “Take a few deep breath. Everything is fine and you will see that”.

Marie nodded obviously not convinced at all but she let herself be pulled to her feet by Anya’s strong grip. The general held Marie’s dark green coat open for the girl to slip her arms into as the nights were starting to get colder as winter was approaching.

Gustus and Ryder both fell into step behind the commander once they stepped out of Lexa’s quarters. Titus would have already escorted the older novitiates to the place of the execution and would be waiting there.

Marie’s eyes widened when they left the tower. The place in front of the tower was crowded with people and a path led to a raised huge podium where six huge poles had been erected. It was unfortunate that Marie’s first real impression of Polis would be of tonight, but Anya hoped that the girl would enjoy the festivities that were due to start the next day and would probably last for a few days.

In the back of the podium Titus already stood beside the nightblood children, missing the two smallest ones. A few high ranking generals and ambassadors were also waiting for the commander on the podium.

Lexa led them up to the podium with an air of absolute authority around her. The people gathered around the podium were mostly civilians of Polis intermixed with those freed from the Mountain, some vendors from other clans as well as delegations who already had arrived for the festivities.

Lexa stepping onto the podium was a sign for guards who had stood in the shadow of the tower to bring forth the prisoners who were to die now. Four men and two women were dragged more or less willingly towards the poles. Marie immediately recognized Arla, who also looked to have been violently interrogated, and Soy. Both of them did not resist in the slightest and the others who struggled against the guards were all completely unfamiliar to Marie.

The girl stayed standing next to Anya, as both of them had instructed her on their way down, and waited for the commander to address the crowd.

 

 

Chapter 66

Lexa watched impassively as the prisoners were bound to the poles they would die on in the next hours. Her jaw clenched shut and her lips thinned were the only indications to the anger still cursing through her veins. Marie was fidgeting in her place next to Anya so much that the general forcefully put a hand on the girl’s shoulder to ground her somewhat. The girl looked up at Anya with apologetic grey eyes shortly but Anya merely inclined her head mutely and gave her shoulder a reassuring squeeze.

As the guards stepped back from the poles the commander stepped forward into the middle of the podium turning her back to the prisoners and addressing the crowed with a loud clear voice “We are gathered here to punish those who tried to end my reign with an unsuccessful assassination attempt. All of them were directly involved and will die death by a thousand cuts. Blood must have blood!”

Lexa shouted the last phrase in an angry snarl and the crowd picked up the phrase chanting it for a few moments until the commander raised her hand silently. Marie really admired how Lexa could silence the whole crowd of obviously angry people by a mere rise of her hand. But really everyone fell silent in a few seconds and Lexa was handed a dagger with a beautifully crafted handle by Titus.

The flamekeeper stepped back as Lexa went over to Soy, who in her eyes was the one really guilty, he had simply succeeded in getting the others to help him. He had been on a campaign of personal revenge and had dragged at least Arla into all of this. But Lexa could not spare the young handmaiden, she knew that she had been fortunate that Marie’s involvement had remained between Anya and her, or their second would also be standing here at the moment.

Lexa quickly placed a cut on the man, she doubted he would last long. He had already lost quite a lot of blood already. The man’s eyes burned with hatred as she looked into them for a silent moment before she stepped over to the man, who had been responsible to organize the guards around the tower. Titus had told her that he had been promised to be promoted to a high ranking general by whoever became the commander after her. It was obvious to her that the man’s involvement already proved his inability to serve as a general, he was simply lacking the character, strategical thinking and foresight such a position required.

The commander placed her cuts on all of the prisoners and handed the dagger over to Titus, as the flamekeeper he was the one to rule Polis until the conclave took place. She stepped back up to Anya and took a closer look to Marie. But the girl was intensely watching Titus movements as he placed his own cuts. The nightblood children were handed the dagger next and all of them placed their cuts in quick sure movements. Afterwards it was Anya’s turn and the woman reluctantly left Marie’s side. The girl had slightly been leaning against her legs as if needing another’s strength to stay upright at the moment.

Her cuts were slightly deeper than those the nightbloods had placed prior to her and Arla moaned in obvious discomfort, the first to react to the pain. Marie had already known that she would be the next one to get the dagger and that Gustus would receive the blade after her. But her fingers visibly trembled as Anya pressed the dagger into her smaller hand and Marie had to fight against the urge to stare at the blade as she could already feel a moisture on the handle that could only be fresh blood. She could practically feel the eyes of the crowd following her every move as she slowly stepped up to the first pole. With trembling fingers Marie placed her first cut with obviously more force than would have been needed. The blade easily cut through the skin of Soy and Marie had tried so hard to keep her fingers steady that she felt as the blade suddenly collided with the hipbone of the man. The man grunted through gritted teeth and Marie ripped the blade from the cut nearly stumbling backwards as the blade came free of his body. Blood gushed out of the huge wound immediately some catching the girl’s hands as she jerked away.

Marie placed the other cuts way more quickly and hesitantly barely drawing blood at all. She was grateful Gustus met her halfway on her way back to Anya and took the blade from her. Marie stumbled back between Lexa and Anya and was unsuccessfully rubbing at her hands trying to get the drying blood of. Anya hissed at her lowly to stop that and Marie had to concentrate on keeping her hands at her sides. Lexa could see the girl’s fingers clenching occasionally with the need to scrub them clean again from the corner of her eyes.

Marie barely watched anymore as the dagger was handed from one person to another. Her hip was hurting constantly and she could literally feel Soy’s blood drying on her fingers making her skin crawl uncomfortably.

As Lexa had predicted Soy and Arla were the first ones to succumb to their injuries. Not even half of those gathered around the podium had been given the blade at this point. Guards took the bodies of both of them from their poles and carried them to a pyre that had already been built in preparation on the other side of the crowd.

None of them lasted until Lexa’s sword though. The executions had taken the better time of the whole night and pale sliver of light already proceeded the rise of the sun in the following morning. Marie was leaning heavily against Anya although her eyes were wide opened Lexa doubted the girl noticed much of the proceedings. When the last body had been moved to the pyre Lexa lit the huge pyre with a blazing torch and the crowed stayed to see the bodies being consumed by the fire.

The commander would wait until the bodies had burnt completely before she could return to the tower. She had Titus postpone all meetings that had been scheduled for the next morning and only wanted to be disturbed in case of a pressing emergency otherwise she would rest slightly longer. Anya had also opted to stay with her previous second so that Marie also had to stay with them. Lexa would have liked to offer the girl to leave but she knew that all the ambassadors had been watching the girl the whole night and she was grateful Marie had at least not cried and she hoped the girl would keep her bearing together for the rest of the night.

The pain relief of the tea had long since stopped numbing the burning pain in her hip and her mind was awkwardly blank. As Marie was staring into space she startled when Anya suddenly steered her into the direction back to the tower, the girl had not even noticed how the fire had turned to nothing more than gleaming embers.

Lexa and Anya had to move even slower now as Marie seemed to be in great pain with each step she took. Anya waited until they had finally entered the entrance hall of the tower and simply picked the girl up carrying her on her hip like done with much smaller children. Marie did not protest Anya’s handling of her at all silently only thankful to be off her feet. Lexa watched her former mentor with fondness in her eyes when Marie slung her arms around Anya’s neck her fingers still caked in dried blood and laid her head against the woman’s neck.

The way up to the top floor of the tower passed in silence. Both women were worn out from the long day wanted nothing more than a few hours of peaceful rest. Marie’s grey eyes were focused on the commander’s face as she listened to Anya’s steady pulse beneath her ear.

When they reached the top floor and left the elevator Anya stopped with Marie in her arms in front of the door to their joined quarters and bid goodnight to Lexa. The commander nodded to Marie and Anya and continued down the corridor to her own quarters in front of which guards were already posted.

Anya sat Marie down on the bed and quickly went into the bathroom. She came back carrying a bowl with clean water and a few clean rags “Clean your hands” the woman instructed in a gentle tone and started to shrug out of the armour she had been wearing the whole day.

Marie mutely scrubbed at her finger quickly turning the clean water in the bowl a muddy red. The girl was scrubbing so fervently that Anya feared she would just scratch open her own hands if she did not stop soon so she forcefully took the rag from Marie’s fingers “Look at your hands, Marie, they are perfectly clean” Anya said to her charge in an even tone holding the girl’s gaze for long moments.

Marie obediently looked at her fingers and although they truly were clean of the blood in her mind she could still feel the blood sticking to her skin. Anya took another rag and carefully cleaned Marie’s face off the black war paint smudged around the girl’s eyes.

“You should get ready for bed” Anya instructed and shortly went back into the bathroom. The woman tended to sleep only in her underwear and a loosely fitting tank top. She placed her armour carefully over a chair in one corner of the room and watched as Marie disrobed still sitting on the bed. Anya helped the girl by crouching down and pulling her trousers down her legs and took the clothes Marie had carelessly discarded on the floor next to the bed to another chair where she neatly folded the girl’s clothing. It worried Anya slightly that Marie had not said a single word yet but she chalked it up to exhaustion and maybe a bit of shock and hoped that a few hours of sleep would be enough to lighten her mood again. Anya quickly went around the room and blew out the candles scattered around their quarters leaving the moonlight that shone through the windows the only slight source of light.

Anya did not even try to get Marie to sleep in her own bed this night. So she checked that the dagger she kept hidden under her pillow was still there and slipped under the furs. When Marie remained sitting on the edge of the bed without any reaction Anya directed her to lay down. The woman could see Marie shortly glancing towards her own smaller bed and she huffed “Just lay down, you can stay with me for the night” Anya offered and Marie immediately scooted closer to the other woman and slipped under the furs.

Marie positioned herself in a way that enabled her to lay her head on Anya’s chest so that she could listen to the other’s strong heartbeat. Anya just tightened her arms around the girl’s smaller body exhaling in a mute sigh and whispered into her blonde soft hair “Sleep, ai skaifay, it is over and I will keep watch over you”.

Fortunately for Anya Marie was so exhausted that she quickly was lulled to sleep by her steady heartbeat. But unfortunately it also did not take very long for Marie’s sleep to be disturbed by nightmares. Anya ended up cradling the girl’s body close to her chest stroking her back and hair soothingly and whispering sweet nothings into her ears for the better time of the rest of the night.

They were both completely exhausted and Anya already had a severe headache pounding behind her eyelids when Lexa came into the room a few hours later. The commander seemed surprised to find both of them still in bed. She signalled for a guard to call for breakfast for all of them and greeted Marie with a “good morning” when the girl left the bed swaying slightly on her feet. “Morning” Marie murmured and Lexa quickly assisted the girl the few steps to the bathroom making sure she would not fall.

“Rough night?” Lexa asked just as Anya had sat up in the bed rubbing at her eyes and massaging her temples.

“You can’t imagine” Anya grumbled “She barely slept for a few minutes at a time. You can have her the next night…” her voice was annoyed even though worry for their charge was evident in her eyes.

Lexa chuckled under her breath at her general’s antics knowing that Anya tented to be short tempered if she lacked sleep until she woke up completely at least. “And it will be another long day for all of us with the opening feast” she commented watching as Anya dressed herself. She did not respond to the comment of taking Marie for the next night but if the opportunity presented itself Lexa had nothing against Marie sleeping in her quarters at all. The commander knew that her general was probably hoping to reunite with the female warrior from the desert clan she liked to share her furs with if they ever saw each other.

When Marie finally emerged back from the bathroom her steps had become surer again and her long blond hair fell freely over her shoulders as the braids had loosened over the night and she had completely brushed them out.

Alira personally brought the breakfast for all of them just as Lexa had motioned Marie over to stand in front of her to quickly redo the braids for the girl. The older handmaiden handed Marie a cup still steaming slightly and said with a twinkle in her eyes “with a bit of honey, just for you”. Marie thanked Alira with a beaming smile while Lexa could see Anya just rolling her eyes, she knew that the general thought that they had started to spoil the girl.

Their late shared breakfast passed quickly and was interrupted by Gustus knocking on the door proclaiming that Titus wanted the message relayed to Lexa that all ambassadors had assembled in the throne room. Lexa told him that she would arrive shortly and his heavy footsteps resonated through the mostly empty hallway.

“Aren’t you late?” Marie questioned with a slightly cocked head as Lexa calmly finished what she had been eating before cleaning her hands and slipping on her gloves.

The woman shook her head “The commander is never late, Marie”. The girl scrunched up her brow in confusion as the sentence did not make much sense to her.

“They can’t start the meeting without Lexa” Anya supplied as she buckled on her sword “So whenever Lexa arrives the meetings will start and by thus she simply can’t be too late, the others simply were too early.”

Marie chuckled lowly but remained seated on the bed and she looked up slightly startled to Lexa when the commander offered her gloved hand for her to take. “You will be introduced to the ambassadors in this meeting, so your presence is also required” the commander explained. The girl’s mouth formed an “o” of surprise but she quickly took her hand and let herself be hoisted off the bed.

“Do I need to do or say anything?” Marie questioned curiously as they made their way to the elevator as she glanced at Anya first and then at Lexa.

Both women shook their heads in the negative and Lexa elaborated “No, the meeting won’t be long. I am sure some of the ambassadors will eagerly try to talk to you at the opening banquet of the festivities this night.” Marie nodded her head in understanding so there was no reason for her to be nervous.

Lexa proceeded them into the throne room and Marie followed Anya to her destined place in the big room. Men and women were now standing in front of the chairs Marie had seen empty before and she curiously let her grey eyes glance around the room noting the different clothing the people from the different clans wore. As Lexa had reached her throne and turned around to face the small gathering she loudly said “Greetings ambassadors”. The greetings were answered by all those in the room in a loud chorus and everyone kneeled down in submission, Marie quickly copied Anya’s movements although getting on her knees proved to be rather painful still.

All got to their feet again when Lexa commanded it and she addressed the crowd again “We have gathered here to speak about our brothers and sisters rescued from the Mountain. Some have expressed their desire to stay within Polis and they will be granted their wishes.” The commander paused and regarded the reactions from the ambassadors in the silence that now filled the room. “I will establish a unit of warriors only loyal to the flame and by thus the commander regardless of the clans they were born into” Lexa continued and she could already see that some of the ambassadors were not happy with this piece of new information. “Organizing the unit and Polis’ army will now be the duty from Anya kom Trikru” she added nodding to her former mentor shortly. The woman inclined her head in acceptance as they had already spoken about this in private.

“Will we be forced to send our best warriors to your private army now?” the ambassador of the Rock Line clan demanded to know loudly. Lexa narrowed her eyes at the impertinent man “No, you will not. Only those who desire to solely fight for the flame will be part of this unit. But I might need to remind you that being part of the coalition means that there should be fewer wars, declining the need for warriors all together”.

The man’s eyes glazed minutely but he remained silence after the chastisement. Lexa stared him down for another moment before she let her gaze wander around the room shortly and then continued “I also want to introduce Marie from the Sky people to you, who is, as rumour already might have told all of you, a second to the flame”. Marie remained upright in her chair and met the curious glances with a calm façade although she wished Lexa would call the attention away from her.

“What about Skykru, should we not…” the desert clan ambassador addressed the commander in the silence. Lexa lazily raised her hand silencing the man immediately “I will not hear this again” she said in an unyielding tone. She asked the Trikru ambassador if there had been any violent meetings between both clans since the Mountain, the woman declined telling that Skykru have offered aid for the injured of TonDC and some had returned to TonDC to assist in the rebuilding of the village and that the chancellor wanted to speak about trade alliances with Trikru. Lexa nodded thankfully to her and said “I will meet personally with a Skykru delegation in three weeks from now to negotiate trade treaties. I will not march with an army against the clan if they remain peaceful.” She looked at the desert clan ambassador with sharp green eyes daring him to defy her now but the man wisely remained silent now so Lexa closed the meeting dismissing the ambassadors until the opening banquet.

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

Chapter 67

“What happens at the festivities?” Marie asked curiously after the ambassadors had all left the throne room leaving only Anya, Gustus, Ryder and Titus standing in front of the wooden throne were Lexa was sitting.

“All of the clans will officially receive those back who have been rescued from the Mountain at the opening banquet and afterwards there will mostly be people celebrating with a lot of food and drinks and everywhere small competitions will take place” Anya tried to explain to the girl.

“Did you not have something like that on the Ark?” Lexa asked with interest.

Marie thought for a second before she shook her head “Not really. There was a small gathering during the unity day but it never lasted long”

Anya snorted “The whole city will be in festive mood for days”.

“Really?” Marie clarified with big eyes she was completely incapable of envisioning what that would look like. The mood at the executions had been heavy and she hoped the festivities would be totally different.

“I am sure you will enjoy it” Gustus supplied with a gentle twinkle to his dark eyes.

Lexa could see Titus’ watching the exchange with narrowed eyes, it was painfully obvious that her old teacher was still suspicious of the girl. Lexa furrowed her brow, as second to the flame Marie was actually entitled to learn the rites of the passage of the flame. Basically the girl could be educated to function as a flamekeeper. The purpose behind having a second who knew how the rituals worked was that a commander could fall in the chaos of battle and it might be impossible to gather the body later and the real flamekeeper usually resided in Polis and did not travel with the commander. A headache formed behind Lexa’s temple at the thought of having to argue with Titus to start teaching Marie in the future. For now the girl would still first and foremost need to learn the skills needed to keep her alive in battle, but planning ahead was essential.

“Where is the girl to be placed at the banquet?” Titus interrupted the conversation with his question his eyes boring into Lexa’s intensely.

“Next to me and Anya” Lexa easily replied keeping her tone bored on purpose and she could already see a vein on Titus’ forehead pulsing in obvious annoyance but the bald man swallowed down his criticism and wisely only nodded his head. She had already made it clear to him that she wanted Marie’s place made clear right from the beginning and she would not back down now.

Lexa had already decided that Marie would sit directly next to her and Anya on the girl’s other side shielding her at least somewhat from the curiosity the girl would surely draw from the ambassadors and clan leaders sharing the banquet table this night. The last days had proven how easily the girl was to be manipulated if left alone so Anya and she had decided to hinder the girl being alone with others for now until Marie was surer of herself and what her new role entitled.

“When will the banquet start?” Marie inquired curiously obviously eager for the event to start.

Lexa’s eyes softened at the girl’s open enthusiasm “In a few hours, but we will change again beforehand. I picked the dress myself you will be wearing.”

“A real dress?” Marie mouthed her grey eyes shining excitedly.

Anya snorted and shook her head “You can go in a sack if that suits you better…” Marie’s face fell slightly obviously still unsure how to handle Anya’s sarcasm she used sometimes.

Lexa lightly glared at her old mentor “I am sure you will like it. Have you never worn one before?”

Marie shook her head her brows furrowed in thought “Not that I can remember. But I have seen some pictures”.

Guards opened the huge doors to the throne room and Alira quickly slipped through telling the commander that the preparation were finished and baths were drawn for them. The commander thanked the handmaiden and stood from her throne. Titus was the first one to leave the room and Lexa knew he was heeded to the quarters of the novitiates who were also allowed to attend the banquet.

Marie followed Lexa and Anya who were both deep in a conversation about the small unit Lexa wanted to raise who would fight independently of their clans. The girl only listened half-heartedly but noted that she did not have much problems to follow the words of the conversation although they were spoken in Trigedasleng. She had not even really noticed how quickly she had become fluent in the foreign language.

Lexa bid them farewell in front of the door to their shared quarters and left in the direction of her own rooms. Anya offered to wash Marie’s hair for the girl and let her take the bath before her. The girl still needed some assistance getting her legs over the bath tubs ledge anyway. 

So Marie stripped out of her clothing in the bathroom while Anya laid out her own clothes for the banquet. The girl waited in front of the bath tub filled with gently steaming water scented with flowery oils for Anya to return. Anya offered her outstretched hand to Marie and eased the girl into the water making sure she would not slip on the wet metal. The water was comfortably warm and Marie let out a contented sigh as she submerged in the water. Anya kneeled behind the girl’s head and took a bowl to wet the girl’s head letting some water run over the blonde locks.

She carefully let her fingers slide through the wet locks loosening all the tangles where the girl had not taken out all the braids completely. Anya foamed a soap in her hand and the scent of roses filled the heated room instantly. Marie relaxed back as Anya gently washed her hair and she noticed how careful the woman was to not let any soapy water run over her face. When all of the blonde hair was soaped Anya washed away the thuds again leaving the hair softer than before and smelling faintly of roses. “Lean forward” Anya instructed and when Marie obliged instantly she swept the wet mass of hair over the girl’s shoulder and washed her charges back as well with quick movements. 

“You can get out now” Anya said as she dried her hands off with a towel. Marie pouted and looked at Anya with her huge grey eyes “Can’t I stay in a little bit longer?” Anya huffed in annoyance “And where do you suppose I bath? We have to get ready after all”. The girl furrowed her brow in thought and then pulled her legs to her body making room in the bathing tub “You could just join me” she offered her eyes pleading with Anya.

The woman rolled her brown eyes and snorted under her breath “Alright, you win for now”. She handed Marie a sponge and the soap “Then you will wash my back” and as the girl took the items from her hand Anya quickly stripped out of her own clothing and climbed into the bathing tub fortunately the tub was large enough to easily fit both of them.

“Should I wash your hair first?” Marie asked in a soft tone after Anya had turned her back to the girl. Anya curtly gave her consent, she could have done that herself of course but there was no harm in letting Marie help if she wished.

Marie now repeated all Anya had just done for her previously. The girl cautiously let the tips of her fingers glide over the numerous kill marks that were carved into Anya’s shoulders. A tattoo climbed up the other woman’s spine in an intricate pattern and Marie could make out other scars scattered around Anya’s back and arms, some barely there while others obviously stemmed from deeper wounds. Marie counted a total 43 kill marks and the girl’s mind conjured back the memory of the Mountain Man dying after she had stabbed him in the throat. “Anya, will I also get a kill mark?” the girl asked in the silence of the room her voice sounded awfully small.

Anya turned around the girl’s hands which had still been touching her back now hovered in the space between them. She gently grasped the girl’s smaller hands in her own and gave them a squeeze “Do you wish to get one?” Anya could see a conflict dancing over the girl’s grey eyes before the girl said her voice sounding as lost as her words “I don’t know”.

“You should not get just because you think you are supposed to have one” Anya reasoned with the girl her brown eyes boring into hers strongly.

Marie nodded mutely “What do they mean to you?” the child wanted to know still looking unsure of herself.

Anya took a deep breath “I got them for different reasons. The first ones to show off my skills in battle. Nowadays I do not get a mark for every kill. Mostly one for those I specifically want to remember.” The response was still somewhat elusive but it seemed to be enough for Marie as she said her eyes blazing with determination “Then I should get two”.

“Two?” Anya echoed with a frown, she only knew of one kill after all.

“For when I saved you from the Mountain Man and when Lexa almost …” her voice trailed off and now it was Anya’s turn to frown. Two kill marks would look impressive on someone as young as their charge and it would openly display her strength so she nodded after a moment of silent thinking.

“It is time to finally get ready for the festivities” Anya said breaking the heavy silence after another few moments and stood up from the bathing tub stepping over the ledge and wrapping a huge towel around her body. She offered a hand to Marie and helped the girl from the bathing tub also handing another towel to her. The woman wrapped another towel around her dripping hair.

When she caught Marie looking at her with eyes full of wonder Anya quirked a brow at the girl “What is it?”

“You look so different” Marie said after a second a soft smile on her lips. “Barefoot and wrapped in a towel?” Anya inquired teasingly “I would hope so”.

“No” Marie clarified shaking her head slightly “Without war paint”.

“Mmh” Anya grunted noncommittally although she felt touched by the girl’s words for a reason she could not pin down herself at the moment. The moment was broken when a pair of handmaiden knocked on the door to their quarters. 

Marie looked to be startled by the knocking but Anya quickly went to open the door and let the handmaidens enter. Lexa had already told her that she would send handmaidens to their quarters to make their hair more elaborate signifying their status in Lexa’s trusted circle.

Anya did not know the two women personally they were younger than her but older than Arla had been. Marie obediently sat down onto the chair one of the handmaidens indicated for her. The woman rubbed the blonde hair as dry as possible and combed through the blonde locks. Anya sat down on another chair and let the other handmaid work on her hair.

It took some time for the handmaiden to finish with both of their hair. Anya had her hair styled in a similar fashion she usually wore the only change that a few more strands were braided and some silver clips had been included. Marie’s hair looked completely different in contrast. The long blonde mane had been braided back and up in a series of smaller and bigger braids exposing the girl’s back. A few thin locks hung around the girl’s face giving a gentler picture and she also had some jewellery clips included in her hair. Anya quickly applied some black coal just around her eyes and dismissed the handmaidens telling them that they would manage dressing on their own.

Marie stood in front of a big shard of a broken mirror and was turning her head from side to side to see her hair she even carefully let her fingers glide over some of the braids. “Do not disturb the braids or I will have to call a handmaiden back to start over again” Anya cautioned the girl who immediately let her hands fall down at her side at the reprimand.

Anya let go of the towel slipping into underwear and wrapped a band around her breasts. She slipped the simple beige underdress over her head. It was cut asymmetrically and one side reached to her knee while the other ended just so her butt was covered. Another piece made of what looked to be a net belonged over the underdress. The outfit was finished with a piece of armour which looked more like a very broad leather belt with some buckles fastened around her midriff. It was enough to give the loose dresses form around her lithe body and although Anya rarely wore anything different than armour she liked the look of the outfit.

After the woman had finished she turned back to Marie who had obviously just remained standing where she was watching Anya get dressed. “You look really beautiful” Marie commented as her eyes shone with honest appreciation. Anya just nodded as a thanks and picked up the dress intended for Marie. It was a plain and simple dress dyed a deep blue. Marie would not know that being gifted a dress specifically tailored for her was something special but the girl eyed the dress with beaming smile so Anya refrained from pointing out its significance.

Anya held the dress over Marie’s head and mindful of the braids slipped the fabric over the girl’s body. The dress fitted almost perfectly. It nearly reached the floor and had been cut lower at the girl’s back revealing a huge part of her tattoo. The edge at the front had been embroidered with light blue and darker pearls in a flowery design which was repeated on the hem at the girl’s feet. Marie turned around in circles a few times with a childish squeal echoing through the room. Anya chuckled mutely at the sight and held up a fine silvery belt for Marie which finished her dress and slung it loosely around the girl’s midriff.

“How do I look?” Marie wanted to know from Anya after the woman had stepped back and turned around once more for her. “Also very beautiful” Anya assured her with twinkling eyes and a soft smile.

Another knock sounded from the door which swung open a second later to reveal Lexa. Marie’s mouth formed an “o” of wonder at the sight of Lexa. Her brown hair was braided in her usual pattern away from her face. The makeup she wore was different from her usual war paint. It seemed to consist of a mixture of black, red and a dark blue bringing out the green in Lexa’s eyes even brighter. And it was painted in a winged way from her eyes horizontally to her hair line. She was also not dressed in her usual commander attire but also was wearing a dress. It was mostly black with a few colourful patches reflecting the colour of the makeup around her eyes.

“Do you like your dress?” Lexa asked after she had quickly looked the girl over. Marie turned around in quick circle again nearly losing her balance if not for Anya’s hands quickly shooting out and steadying the child. The girl nodded with a huge smile plastered on her face “It is absolutely perfect”. Lexa gave the girl a soft smile “I am glad you like it”.

“It is start to go, is it not?” Anya remarked fastening the belt around her body more tightly. The commander nodded “I thought it might be good to arrive together”. Anya quirked her brow in confusion, Titus had always taken great care right from Lexa’s very first day as the commander to have the young commander separated from her. But she understood Lexa’s possible aim, they would be showing a united front this way. They both knew that the situation of the coalition would be precarious now that their shared enemy had been felled once and for all. So she nodded and added after a moment of silent hesitation “I guess Titus won’t like that” a gleam shone in her brown eyes as she also added “which is just a bonus for sure”. Lexa looked at her former mentor disparagingly although Anya could tell the younger woman fought a smile judging by the amused twinkle in her eyes.

“Titus rarely likes anything” Lexa commented drily “and I am sure he will like it even less when I propose to him that I want him to start teaching Marie the duties of a flamekeeper”.

Anya burst out laughing “Oh, please let me be in the room when you break the news to him”. Marie cocked her head confused at both of their antics and asked “What does duties of a flamekeeper mean?”

“That will be explained to you at a later point” Lexa assured Marie and glanced out of the window “We should go now, or Titus will probably come back to haul me out himself”. Even Marie now laughed lightly at Lexa’s obvious joke. The girl doubted Titus could really force Lexa to do anything no matter how much he might try.

Previously in chapter 67

Preparations for the opening banquet of the festivities. Anya helps Marie get ready and they share a bath together.

 

Chapter 68

The further they came down in the tower sounds of a large crowd already echoed through the streets. Anya explained to her that the banquet was held in the tower with delegations of all clans and the ambassadors but that the normal people had already started the festivities on the street.

Marie was much more excited to see what Anya called the normal people. A banquet with delegations sounded awfully formal and probably boring as hell. In addition the girl looked forward to really seeing some of Polis for the first time.

The banquet took place in a huge room which was situated on one of the lower levels of the tower. When they stepped off of the elevator servants were still bustling around the halls carrying huge plates with various foods and huge mugs filled with different drinks.

Guards also lined the hall in front of the room and Titus was waiting at the door and when he saw Lexa approaching he acknowledged her with a mute dip of his head and turned around to announce the commander’s arrival.

Lexa proceeded the small group flanked on both sides by Gustus and Ryder and Marie walked next to Anya trailing behind Lexa only a short distance.

Her grey eyes widened as she took in the scenery of the room. Large chandeliers hung from the ceiling which held numerous glowing candles each and some torches were distributed around the room casting a soft golden light around the room. When Lexa entered a woman standing behind a dais also dressed in a pretty dress more similar to what Anya was wearing begun singing in a clear dramatic way. Marie first wondered that she had not thought that the people would sing songs and then mentally chastised herself for such a thought.

Huge tables were practically overflowing with various offers of different foods and the delegations of the different clans were easily distinguishable by the different clothing they wore. Although it was pretty warm in the room the Ice Nation delegation still had fur details incorporated within their outfits.

No throne was visible in the room but Lexa aimed for a chair at the head of the huge table filling most of the room. Anya guided Marie to one of the chairs next to Lexa’s and sat down the girl’s other side. Gustus and Ryder remained standing slightly behind Lexa’s chair keeping their eyes watchful even though Marie could easily spot many more guards scattered around the room.

Lexa gave a short speech to the gathering. Telling all of them how deeply contend she was to be able to bring those back taken by the Mountain and how she looked forward to the reunions. The commander had had to organize a lot of accommodations as many people from different clans had wanted to come to Polis in the hopes of finding their loved ones among those which had been rescued. She predicted that now that their common enemy had finally been conquered they could thrive towards a new era of peace and prospering.

Anya watched the gathering carefully during Lexa’s short speech noting which delegations did not look as honestly happy and hopeful as they should at the moment. She had to acknowledge with a frown that all those who had opposed Lexa’s reign the most strongly still looked rather doubtful and she dearly hoped that the commander would be able to stabilize the coalition.

Lexa ended her speech with giving a toast. Marie glanced at the cup wearily. The liquid inside was a dark red colour and she highly suspected it to be some wine again and judging by the intensity of the colour she feared it was not watered down at all. The people scattered around the table all had mugs raised in answer to the toast and Marie carefully took a small sip of the unknown liquid. She had her face scrunched up already in anticipation but looked at the mug with obvious confusion when the liquid was totally sweet and did not seem to be wine at all.

“What is that?” Marie lowly wanted to know from Anya. The woman smirked slightly “It is a juice made from the berries also used to make wine”. “I like it” the girl whispered back with a small smile. “I gathered” Anya noted and turned her gaze to those sitting opposite of them. Anya immediately recognized Luna and wondered why Lexa had invited the woman. Most were unaware that Luna was the nightblood which had fled from Lexa’s conclave but Anya had been there after all so she immediately recognized the curly red hair. The woman’s brown eyes were fixed on Marie in open curiosity. Lexa was telling Marie what foods laid in front of her so the girl did not notice the other’s stare at all.

Marie tried a little bit of almost everything Lexa recommended to her. Some taste were obviously not to her liking as the girl immediately curled her lips in distaste. After the girl had eaten her fill she started to pay more attention to her surrounding and immediately caught Luna still staring at her. Marie looked away from the intense gaze at once and looked back at Lexa instead.

“Mmh” Luna commented disparagingly “I do fail to notice courage in her”.   Marie’s eyes immediately snapped back to the woman and she narrowed her eyes at the stranger now staring right back at her. Luna cocked her head at the girl “There it is”.

“Luna” Lexa lowly reprimanded from between them “Why don’t I introduce…” Luna interrupted the commander “Everyone knows who she is. You had to pick the one that would stand out so strongly.” Lexa glared at the other woman. Luna had never been intimidated by her and Lexa still wondered if she would have even rise to be the commander if the other girl had not chosen to run from the conclave. She shook her head mutely such thoughts did not matter anymore now and she highly doubted Luna would have lasted as long as she already had. Although the girl clearly never lacked strength when it came to fighting Lexa knew that she would not have been able to make the hard decisions and sacrifices demanded by this position.

“Have I done something to offend you?” Marie asked honestly taking both Lexa and Anya by surprise. The way Luna blinked her eyes at the girl proving she had also not predicted such a reaction from the girl “No, you have not”.

“Mmmhh” Marie grunted noncommittally and after a moment of silent contemplation “I don’t like you either”.

Lexa wanted to reprimand the girl for her rudeness while Luna threw her head back and laughed so loud others were already looking at the woman strangely. Marie seemed to be completely bewildered and looked to Anya a silent question in her grey eyes. Anya took another sip from her mug of wine and said to Marie so low only Marie and Lexa could catch the words “Do not mind her, she has always been rather strange and rude”.  Lexa shook her head when Marie opened her mouth to ask for more information minding the people still with them in the room. Titus had never understood why Lexa chose to let Luna live after she chose to run and she knew that it would cause unrest would Luna’s black blood become common knowledge now.

Due to her placement between Lexa and Anya no one beside Luna dared to approach Marie. The girl was eager for the banquet to end and after she had finished the actual act of eating the gathering proved to be as boring as she had feared.

“When will we go outside?” Marie first asked turning her head to Anya. The woman just said “later” and resumed drinking the strong wine. Marie narrowed her eyes at her mentor but turned her head around to Lexa “When will …”

The commander interrupted the girl’s question before she could finish speaking. “I have heard your question, Marie” she said in a gentle tone “We shall go soon”. Marie pouted slightly as “soon” was a much undefined time interval. Luna had watched the quite interactions between the three of them silently. The woman leaned over to Lexa “You both deeply care for her”. Lexa quirked a brow at the other woman to speak what she actually wanted to say. “I have heard what happened to Costia” Luna said and Lexa stiffened slightly. “Do you wish to imply something?” the commander seethed at the woman with a hard glint in her green eyes. Luna immediately shook her head “I was sorry to hear about her”. Silence settled between them for a moment but Lexa waited feeling that Luna was not finished and she was proven correct when the other woman started speaking again “If I did not know any better I would say she is yours”.

At the offended look on Lexa’s face Luna clarified “Both you and Anya act as if she could be your own child”. Lexa sighed “You know she is not”. “But still you have a different bond to her than a bond between a first and second would require” Luna added.

“What do you want to say?” Lexa snarled at the other woman annoyed with this implying. Luna sighed deeply “I have a daughter of my own. Just be careful”

Before Lexa could say anything the other woman had stood up from her chair and left the room with quick strides without another word. Lexa internally wondered if they were being this obvious or if Luna just knew both of them so well after all the years they had spent in close proximity.

She had no idea why Luna chose to bring up Costia. Lexa could not shake off the memory of Costia’s lifeless eyes as her head was delivered to her bed. She also remembered the way Marie had looked at her and screamed for Anya as she was dragged away and how deeply hurt Clarke had looked at her as she called for the retreat.

“We can leave now” Lexa proclaimed shaking the dark memories from her mind. But she still could not completely banished wondering if Luna had heard that someone planned to target Marie in the future. Lexa also had not been aware that Luna was a mother. Spies were scattered over all the clans just to be sure and she wondered why the spies she knew who lived with the Boat People had not reported the birth of a child to Luna. She would need to send a flamekeeper to hear if the child could have nightblood as well. They still had no idea if the nightblood was hereditary or just a random occurrence.

Marie eagerly stood up while Anya emptied her mug in one go and Lexa quirked a brow at the other woman in silent question. But Anya ignored her question all together. Gustus and Ryder fell into step behind Lexa and a few other guards joined their group on their way to the elevator. Marie seemed almost impatient to finally get outside and was wiggling in her place in open excitement.

The streets were crowded with people. Guards were scattered around the celebrations and the mood was high. Marie seemed almost overwhelmed by all the new impressions.

Some people were openly hugging each other and Lexa spotted some of those who had been rescued from the Mountain finally reuniting with their love ones. Music was being played almost around every corner and people from different clans had mixed together some dancing and others just conversing with each other.

As Anya had promised small competitions took place everywhere. The people who organized them were loudly shouting over all the noise calling to those walking by their stalls to partake as well. The competitions differed. Some were done with weapons, like shooting a bow or throwing knifes at targets, while others were simple sparring matches without weapons or for example knocking down a stack of cans with a small ball.

A stall where a long path had been cleared and targets were positioned at different distances to throw knifes at caught Marie’s interest immediately. Anya also slowed as she spotted the female warrior from the desert clan she had secretly hoped to reunite with.

“Zora” she called out loudly smiling widely at the woman. The woman in question turned around at the familiar voice and Marie noted that she also had blonde hair braided together with bright yellow pieces of cloth and how her eyes were a light brown. She answered Anya’s smile and instantly enveloped the woman in a hug and quickly pecked her on the lips.

Marie blinked at both of them in confusion. She wondered if it was normal here for women to kiss each other. The girl tried to remember if she had seen something similar on the Ark but no, she could not. The couples she could remember had all been a man and a woman and mostly complimented by a child.

The stall’s owner had spotted the commander and the big man came over to them offering knives to Lexa “Would you honour me, commander?” Lexa nodded and took the offered knives. Anya and the stranger, named Zora, were talking intimately with each other so Marie turned her attention to Lexa and when she saw that the commander accepted the knives from the man who smiled kindly showing all of his teeth the girl stepped closer to Lexa.

“Can I try after you?” Marie asked eagerly looking hopeful. Lexa looked at the targets. All targets had been placed two times so they could use the course together. “Here” Lexa said offering a knife to Marie “We can try against each other”.

Marie looked at Lexa wide eyed “Mmmh, I can only lose that match”. “Who knows?” Lexa answered with a teasing glint in her eyes.

Marie squared her shoulders recognizing the challenge and accepted the dagger. The knife felt slightly off in her fingers she had no idea what was wrong with the blade but Lexa’s daggers had a complete different feeling to them.

When Marie tried hitting the first target the knife fell to ground as the blade had flown completely different than she had predicted. Marie looked at the knife on the floor with an offended frown etched on her face. Lexa now took her first strike and hers of course hit the target, not as perfectly as she normally did but it was not a complete miss.

“I don’t want to try again” Marie said pouting refusing to take another dagger from Lexa’s hands. Lexa quirked a brow at the girl “What have I told you about giving up so quickly?” her voice was sharp and Marie lowered her head. When she looked up again her eyes were stronger and she took a dagger from Lexa’s fingers before the girl turned around to throw Lexa halted her “Feel the knife’s balance. Feel how it feels between your fingers. They are balanced completely differently, so they will also behave different when you throw them. Not every dagger is forged to the same quality, you will need to learn how to handle all weapons, no matter their qualities.”

Marie listened intently to Lexa’s words. She nodded and carefully balanced the dagger between her fingers. Her brow furrowed in thought, she longed to compare this dagger with the one she had gotten from Lexa all those weeks ago, but Anya had said she would not need a dagger this evening so she had not strapped the sheath to her thigh as usual.

In the end she followed her instinct. When she let go of the dagger it somehow felt right and to her utmost joy the dagger hit the target now and almost perfectly in the middle. She turned back to Lexa with a huge grin plastered on her face.

“Very good” Lexa inclined her head and also threw her next dagger also hitting the target right in the middle.

The rest of the targets were dealt with in a similar manner. The stall owner seemed very impressed with the girl’s talent with his daggers. Lexa’s skill with throwing knifes was common knowledge in Polis but the girl’s skill had only been some rumours from warriors out of the army until now.

They had grown quite a crowd of onlookers by now. Most of the onlookers were obviously impressed with the girl’s ability, not being much behind Lexa’s skills. Instead of smiling at the onlookers Marie seemed to shrink under the scrutinizing gazes and slightly hid behind Lexa’s form.

Anya had also turned from Zora, who casually had an arm linked around the general’s midriff, and looked at their charge with a frown. It was obvious that Marie felt unwell with all the attention she was getting.

Lexa subtly shook her head at Anya to stop her from saying anything right now with all the audience around them. The tension around them dissipated when a small child ran at Lexa displaying a toothy smile and offering a small self-made bracelet to the commander. The boy’s voice was shrill in its enthusiasm as he said “Thank you for getting rid of the Mountain for all of us”.

Lexa knelt down in front of the boy mindful of the dress she was wearing to be on eyelevel with the bright eyed boy and she offered her wrist and waited patiently until the boy had fastened the bracelet around her wrist.

Marie watched on in silence as the scene unfolded. Unbeknown to Marie the people of Polis all loved the commander for her affinity to the people especially the children. The boy’s mother was rapidly apologizing to Gustus obviously afraid that they might be punished for the boy’s behaviour. But Lexa just playfully ruffled the boy’s unruly hair and sent the boy back to his mother with a smile.

 

 

Chapter 69

Marie was amazed with Polis itself and its citizens. The streets of the city seemed to fan out from the tower and Marie could barely make out a huge metal wall on the horizon from which light reflected sometimes in the near darkness. Some of the streets seem to have remained after the bombs fell made out of stone. But as they travelled further from the tower the streets were not made from stone anymore but rather just some path of trampled ground. The buildings around the tower showed the same kind of destruction as the tower did, missing windows, some fallen balconies and a lot of the walls were smeared with paintings. But what intrigued Marie most was that so many trees were scattered around the streets, some seemed even to grow out of the remnants of buildings. 

The girl followed Lexa closely not wanting to risk getting separated from the commander while Anya had started to hang back slightly from the group together with Zora.

As the night dragged on Marie started to get slower with each step exhaustion gripping her body simultaneously the pain in her hip started to return. Lexa stopped now and then to engage in polite conversation with some representatives of the different clans. They were also stopped time and time again from people who wanted to thank the commander for getting someone back from the Mountain or simply putting a final end to the reaping.

Lexa had to conceal a laugh with a cough when Zora leaned over to Anya and tried to whisper something in the general’s ear. Both of them had already consumed an extensive amount of alcohol and Zora’s whispering was less quite then she had hoped. Anya’s widened eyes and the crimson blush that covered her usually stoically features were priceless to Lexa.

The commander proclaimed that they would return to the tower now. Anya finally got the hint that Marie would sleep in the commander’s quarters for the night and Zora followed them into the tower.

When they arrived at the tower Marie silently noted that more guards seemed to be stationed all around the halls. She lowly questioned Lexa about it and the commander explained to her that the security measures had been increased all over Polis but especially in the tower and it would last at least until the festivities were over an all the clan representatives had left the city again.

Leaving the elevator at the highest floor Marie wanted to go in the quarters she shared with Anya but the commander gently urged her on in the direction of her own quarters with a hand on her back. Zora chuckled under her breath and Anya and she vanished into the room. Lexa ordered a pair of extra guards to stand post in front of Anya’s door as she doubted that both occupants of the room would be alert enough to fend off possible attackers.

Gustus and Ryder left after another pair of guards were stationed in front of Lexa’s door and she ushered the girl into the room. The room was glowing with golden candlelight and Marie looked up at Lexa confusedly.

“Anya will be occupied this night with Zora” Lexa said to her and unfastened the belt around her midriff. “I would not have disturbed them, honestly” Marie assured quickly and the girl’s obvious preference to be with Anya right now felt like a slap to Lexa. She forced a smile on her face knowing that the girl needed only time “They want to catch up, I doubt they will sleep at all” the commander tried to explain “And you are clearly tired and need rest. So sleep.”

Marie nodded and Lexa handed her a black simple shirt the girl could use to sleep in this night. Lexa shrugged out of her dress folding it together carefully and dressed into a black nightgown. The commander collected a bowl of clean water and a few clean rags to clean her face off of the make-up. In the meantime Marie had also changed her clothes and Lexa was again struck by the image how her shirt which fitted her own form perfectly hung loose on the girl’s thin frame and reached down to her knobbly knees.

After cleaning her face of the paint she handed a clean rag to Marie and the girl obediently cleaned her own face while Lexa loosened the tight braids from her hair. The commander padded around the room with bare feet and blew out most of the candles casting the room in shadows. Marie also worked the braids out of her hair carefully not really enjoying sleeping on braided hair.

“What did learning about the flame mean?” Marie asked after slipping under the furs. The girl had turned onto her side, propping her head up on a head to look at Lexa. The woman sighed almost mutely before she answered in a steady voice “The flame contains the spirit of the commanders and the duty of the flamekeeper is to protect the flame and the commander.”

“I thought I was your and Anya’s second and not going to be a flamekeeper” Marie mumbled “Titus is the flamekeeper, right?” Lexa nodded noticing the hint of distaste in the girl’s voice “Previous commander’s always had a second with them that was also qualified at least partly as a flamekeeper. If a commander falls in battle it is not always possible to get access to the body to gather the flame for the next commander or only with heavy losses.”

“So the commander’s second would then get the flame?” Marie surmised with a scrunched brow “But how can a spirit be a physical thing?” Lexa smirked, before her ascension she also had difficulties to believe in the commander’s spirit. “You won’t need to believe in all of this right away. The needed education will take some time” the commander said wanting to end the conversation. Behind the windows the sun was already tinting the horizon orange so they would only get very little rest before she would be needed again.

Lexa closed her eyes and laid back efficiently ending the conversation. Marie stayed on her side for a few more minutes and closely looked at the older girl. The commander looked completely different that way. Her face clean of all traces of any paint, her brown hair freely framing her face in wild brown locks and her features completely relaxed. It was hard for her to match the commander with the young woman lying next to her in her head.

Lexa was grateful that the walls within the tower were relatively thick and that they were not residing in tents at the moment or she would have had to explain certain noises from Anya and Zora to their charge. It was painfully obvious that the small girl was still completely innocent in this regard and she had seemed baffled to see Zora and Anya kissing each other at all. The commander could not shake a certain train of thought from her mind, were relationships between the same genders frowned upon by Skykru? That would put a new perspective to Clarke’s rejection and gave Lexa a sliver of hope for a second. She was quick to extinguish that hope like you would a small fire, at the time Clarke had spoken of a “not yet” but Lexa knew that after her betrayal of Skykru at the Mountain it would have turned into a “not ever”. She had seen the effects of her betrayal in Marie and she doubted that Clarke would feel any differently. A part of her knew that Clarke’s logical part would understand her decision as another leader and the obligation to her people but Marie also understood that now and it did not completely redeem herself in the girl’s grey eyes and it would not be enough to grant her forgiveness from the blonde leader, wherever she might be at the moment.

Lexa opened her eyes after a few minutes of silent thought still feeling Marie’s eyes on her. She turned her head to face the girl in the relative darkness of the room and the few still flickering candles cast Marie’s face in a play of varying shadows. “Can’t you sleep?” Lexa addressed the girl next to her when Marie just silently met her stare. Marie blinked a few times as if waking from a dazed state and then shrugged her shoulders barely visible in the darkened room. “Not really” Marie whispered after a few more silent moments. Lexa saw how tense the girl was lying next to her and instructed her to turn on her stomach. Marie looked at the commander with a raised brow but followed the instructions silently although turning on the bed caused some discomfort in her hips. Lexa left the bed shortly and returned with a small vial in her hands. Marie watched as the she opened the vial and let a small amount of a liquid drop into her palm and spread the liquid between both of her hands. Her hands emanated a strong smell after herbs and Lexa carefully sat down on the bed next to Marie and said “Bare your back to me”. Marie did as asked and Lexa gently started to massage the oil into Marie’s tensed back. The tattoo had healed over completely and the girl’s back was clear of any other scars leaving soft pale skin behind.

Lexa felt Marie tense even more when she first touched the child’s back but she ignored the slight flinch and carefully kneaded the tense muscles under her fingers. It did not take long for Marie’s body to respond to the gentle administration and Lexa felt Marie relax completely under her touch. When the girl’s eyes started to drop close Lexa made her touches even gentler and not long after the girl’s breathing had evened out completely as sleep gripped her senses. Lexa cleaned her fingers of the strongly smelling oil on a clean rag and covered Marie with a thick fur and carefully lay down next to Marie’s slumbering form as to not wake her up again.

The commander fell asleep quickly after that as well but was also awakened as quickly again as Marie started to toss and turn around in her sleep only an hour later. Lexa blinked her eyes opened when she heard and felt Marie struggling next to her. The candles had burnt out in the meantime and the room was now cast in complete darkness bar a small streak of sunlight which fell through a gap in the curtains. Lexa could barely make out Marie’s face scrunched up in a grimace and the fur had tangled around the girl’s body and she was clearly trying to get rid of its weight. After Lexa had discarded Marie of the fur she quickly gathered her smaller body into an embrace, whispering soothing words into her ear and gently stroking her back the girl soon settled down again in Lexa’s embrace. Lexa pulled a fur over both of them but kept her arms around the girl.

Anya had obviously not exaggerated concerning Marie’s nightmares and Lexa had great difficulties to keep the girl asleep for longer than an hour at a time. The girl always started to turn around as if fleeing from something and moaned pitifully after some time as soon as she left the assurance Lexa’s embrace provided her subconsciousness.

Lexa was bleary-eyed and already felt the twinge of a forming headache behind her eyelids when she decided that it was late enough to stand up and by thus wake Marie up as well. The girl’s grey eyes looked slightly swollen and it was obvious they both had not gotten enough rest for one night. Lexa made a mental note to ask her personal healer for something to help the girl sleep. She knew that there was an herbal remedy that would allow her some rest without the disturbance of any nightmares but she also knew that the remedy was highly addictive and could not be taken constantly. Marie would hopefully learn to cope with her nightmares better over time.

The commander left the bed first and slipped into the bathroom quickly getting ready for the day ahead. Alira came into her quarters just as Lexa finished in the bathroom bringing with her a tray laden with breakfast. The older woman helped the commander quickly don on her full commander regalia and while Lexa already ate the woman pulled her brown locks into her usual intricate braids with well-practiced fingers.

Marie looked as if she had dumped her whole head into the bowl of water and her blonde locks stuck around her throat and face. Her limping was obvious but Lexa had already anticipated that yesterday would have been hard on her not fully healed injuries and had not scheduled any physical training for the girl today.

Alira also helped Marie with braiding her hair without any further probing. Marie sat obediently still as Alira quickly worked her fine blonde hair into a few intricate braids. When Marie finally had enough practise she would be able to re-create the style with relative ease.

Luckily scheduled for today was only a small meeting. Lexa regularly tried to directly listen to the problems of the normal citizens and took time to hear their problems and grievances. The commander was sure that Marie would probably enjoy watching the meeting as many times citizens from all different clans came to speak their complains or simply to speak their minds. As such the meeting presented an excellent opportunity for Marie to observe people from more clans than just from Trikru and to learn some politics as well. Aden, Kato and Thalu would also sit in in the meeting to observe and learn.

After that she had planned to show Marie more of her city while visiting the festivities on the streets. It was doubtful if Anya would be in any condition to join today and she knew how seldom Zora and she saw each other over the span of a year so she would not insist on Anya’s company.

Alira left after she had finished with Marie’s hair and the girl nibbled on a piece of bread, obviously not feeling particularly hungry at the moment. Lexa herself had already finished eating and stuck with a strong tea now giving the girl a bit more time to eat at least a little. Marie looked out of the huge windows from Lexa’s quarters and saw the bright blue clear sky and the curtains gently moved by a chilling breeze. The girl shivered slightly as the breeze picked up. Lexa handed Marie her dark green coat “The weather will get colder soon, Marie. Winter is fast approaching.”

The girl accepted the coat with a slight smile shrugging the piece of clothing on immediately. “Do you have snow here?” Marie suddenly chimed in while Lexa was strapping on her weapons. She felt Marie’s grey eyes intently watching her every move as she slipped various knives into their hidden pockets. As Lexa put the last of her blades in its place she turned back to the girl “Yes, there is usually snow. Some winters are harder than others. The last winter has not been particularly strong, making travel still save, but other winters are harder and traveling becomes dangerous if not impossible.”

“Snow looked really nice in the movie I remember watching with my mother once” Marie mused her face shadowed by the memory momentarily. Lexa snorted “I doubt you will find it “really nice””. “Why?” Marie asked cocking her head in the way she always did while asking questions. “You will see. You have never experienced a winter and I doubt that your film portrayed it accurately” Lexa answered her tongue forming the unfamiliar word with a strange pronunciation. 

 

 

Chapter 70

As Lexa had predicted everything was still outside of Anya’s quarters. A tray with untouched breakfast stood beside the door and a pair of guards still stood watch silently. Lexa recognized both of the guards as a part of Trikru and Loran, a young man who had fought as a second with her against Azgeda, asked her if he should wake the general. Lexa immediately shook her head “Let them sleep. When Anya wakes tell her that she can take her time.”

“Won’t there be any training today?” Marie asked confusion colouring her voice as she followed Lexa down the corridor towards the elevator. Lexa shook her head inclining her head down to the girl “You are already limping so we will wait a few days more before we resume your physical training. But you can now accompany me to a meeting and listen in to learn something about politics. You can sit with the oldest nightbloods who will also be there. Afterwards I will need to attend some of the festivities again and can show you around Polis in daylight.”

Marie’s grey eyes shone with joy at the prospect of seeing more of Polis; the girl had already decided that she did not really like sitting in in meetings as they tended to be rather boring. But this meeting truly proved to be different from the meetings Marie had witnessed until now. Aden gave her a gentle smile in greeting after nodding his head to Lexa and the commander urged her to take the free seat next to him. Thalu and Kato only nodded shortly to her and then resumed watching who entered the room. Titus narrowed his eyes at the blonde girl and gave Lexa a dark look for bringing the child with her in the first place but Lexa completely ignored him. “I heard that you nearly match Heda in your skill with throwing knives” Aden said to her in a low voice awe obvious in his eyes. Marie shrugged “I don’t think I am as good as Lexa” her voice clearly portrayed her doubt that she ever would reach such a level at all. The blonde boy narrowed his blue eyes at her as he shot back “You have trained for barely a few weeks. Possessing such a skill already is extremely rare, with enough training you will surely make a great warrior or even general one day.” “You truly think so?” Marie questioned with widened eyes and a slight blush on her pale cheeks. Titus narrowed his eyes even more having stood near enough to the children to caught Aden’s words. Before the bald man could reprimand Aden Lexa cleared her throat and signalled to the guards to let the citizens enter one by one.

Lexa had not told Marie what kind of meeting this was and the girl’s grey eyes blinked in confusion as she took in the appearance of a haggard woman with stringy brown hair. Her body looked thin and her clothes had clearly seen better days and the girl could not make out any visible weapons on her person.

“What brings you here today?” Lexa addressed the woman after a mute nod of acknowledgment. “Heda” the woman answered with reverence in her voice “Bandits are raiding the woods near our village and we have lost most of our reserves for the winter. I am here to plead for some supplies or I am afraid we will not make it through the winter.”

Marie watched silently as she saw fury flash over Lexa’s face momentarily before it was blank again. “You live near the border to Azgeda?” the commander questioned and the woman nodded immediately. “Do you know if the bandits are also Azgeda?” the commander continued her questioning. The woman looked thoughtful for a moment before she answered “We do not know for sure. The bandits retreat over the border into Azgeda territory but we have not seen any markings identifying to what clan they belong.” Lexa nodded with a clenched jaw, she had hoped to have proof of Nia violating the coalition but the queen was slippery and although she thought it unlikely that Nia was unaware of what happened in her kingdom without proof of her knowledge she had nothing to accuse her of.

“How many people reside in your village?” Lexa asked next trying to assess how much supplies the village would need to make it through winter. She knew that the cold season was fast approaching and it would not be long before the first snow now. Closer to the border of Azgeda snow and ice came even earlier making hunting and foraging for food difficult.

“Twenty, Heda” the woman supplied the information willingly “And five under six summers” The commander quickly calculated in her head what the village would need and how much stores Polis could easily share but she also knew that others would need supplies as well. The biggest point in this direction was that she planned to offer aid to Skykru, the clan was still small compared to them and unused to the ways on the earth she highly doubted they would last through winter without any aid.

“Supplies will be organized for your village and a small hunting party can accompany you for a few days to help bring in more game” Lexa proclaimed to the woman who nodded with relief evident on her face.

The meeting continued in the same fashion. People came from different clans and Lexa listened to what grievances they had. She was not able to help all of them this easily. A warrior had come to Polis to complain about how he was treated in the army of the Desert clan. The man at first had said that he was falsely treated poorly no matter what he did. Lexa had intently listened to the young man but something about the way he spoke seemed off somehow. After some well-placed questions the man finally admitted that he had been shunned from the army and he wanted to be taken back in. But it took longer for him to admit that he was probably the only one to blame for this as well. He had obviously hurt a few of his comrades in drunken anger and Lexa told him that such behaviour would not be tolerated in any army. But she still offered him a chance to ask other clans if they were interested to let him fight for them.

“Does she do this often?” Marie whispered to Aden after the fourth speaker had left the throne room. The blonde boy nodded adoration shining in his blue eyes “Heda always takes time to listen to the complaints of all citizens”. “She does not have to do that, right?” Marie probed further. From what she had seen so far Lexa had some power over all the clans and the ultimate power within Trikru and from what she remembered of the few basic history lessons she had had she highly doubted that many leaders were really interested in the problems of the general public. Aden immediately shook his head “No, she does not have to listen to them. But Heda always tells us that a great leader must know what the problems are to be able to work against them.” Marie nodded seeing a new facet of what made Lexa the great leader she obviously was.

Lexa also settled a minor disagreement between two families from two different clans concerning the borders of their properties with ease. Marie noted how it seems that Lexa could come up with a satisfactory solution to nearly all problems. But not all of those who came to speak in front of the commander came to complain, many people had mad the long way to the capitol to thank the commander for finally freeing them of their biggest enemy.

When the meeting finally had ended for the day and all complaints had been listened to Marie beamed up at Lexa “Can I sit in in this one again some time?” Lexa’s eyes softened at the girl’s obvious enthusiasm “I hope you have all learned something” she also addressed the three nightblood novitiates. All of them nodded their heads eagerly, their eyes showing their adoration of her. Titus’ expression was sour and his eyes glinted dangerously but he stayed mute for now.

“Novitiates” he called the children to attention and all three of them immediately nodded their goodbye to the commander and followed behind Titus to re-join the training with the others.

“And now we go to the festivities?” Marie eagerly addressed Lexa after the doors were closed behind Titus and the novitiates. Lexa’s eyes softened at the girl’s open elation. She had not been aware that she had sort of missed the girl’s easily readable joy.

The commander nodded with the ghost of a smile playing around her lips “We can get you fitted for warmer clothes on the market as well while we are outside” she offered Marie a hand to hoist her from the chair.

Gustus and Ryder who had stood just outside the door to the throne room accompanied them into the elevator in silence. As they went down the tower with the elevator the sounds from the streets increased with every level they went further to the ground.

As Lexa had expected the streets were still filled with people intermixed of all different clans. Now that the light of day had returned more children were running through the streets as well. Guards were patrolling the streets with watchful eyes and the commander knew that more guards would be following their small group but they were well trained and not easily spotted, Marie would likely not even notice that they were followed but the extra measure of safety was necessary in such a large crowd. Although the crowd of people seemed to be in high spirit she would be foolish not to anticipate a possible ambush.

The small friendly competitions were still ongoing all over the streets and laughter echoed from the walls of the city. Lexa hoped that now that their common enemy had been conquered they could finally have lasting peace and such a view would repeat itself.

Lexa steered their small group in the direction of the market stalls. They had barely reached the stands of vendors when the first one started to try to offer her samples of his wares for free. Marie was looking around the stalls with widened eyes filled with wonder. Her senses were nearly overwhelmed with all the heavy smells of vendors cooking their various foods over small fires and all the new things to see. Marie had grasped most of Trigedasleng by now and could understand most of all the vendors broadcasting the wares they had to sell. She was unfamiliar with a lot of the words still but her vocabulary was improving fast now that she was in a city where everyone spoke the language.

A woman suddenly approached Marie offering a stick with an unknown piece of food to the girl with a friendly smile. The girl looked unsure for a second looking up to Lexa for reassurance that it was all right to accept the food. Marie eyed the stick a little closer after accepting it into her hand. She had no idea what animal this meat could have been once. Carefully Marie bit of a small chunk from the meat chewing the unfamiliar food with a thoughtful expression. Lexa immediately recognized that the woman came from the boat people and she was selling different types of fishes from the sea. The commander hoped that she could take Marie with her the next time she visited the clan that lived on a platform in the sea.

Marie’s face brightened after she had swallowed the first piece at the taste and she enthusiastically said “Lexa, you need to taste this, it tastes amazing!” Lexa looked down at the girl with a raised brow and shook her head in the negative. Marie’s shoulders dropped immediately and her face fell slightly as she lowered the stick with the rest of the food back down. Lexa huffed under her breath and she leaned down and plucked the stick from the girl’s fingers and took a bite herself. The female vendor was watching the exchange with curious eyes and obviously waited for Lexa’s approval of her wares. Marie was also looking at her expectedly a small smile on her face.

Lexa nodded to the female vendor first in silent thanks and steered Marie away from the stall with a gentle hand on her back and while they walked she said lowly to the girl “It was very tasty, but I would appreciate it, if you kept a low profile.” The girl blinked up at her with grey confused eyes but nodded her mute acknowledgment.

 

Marie’s attention was soon caught back by the different vendors and more tried to offer her samples of food. Her charge now had a bit more self-confidence and accepted the samples with a gracious nod but did not repeat the display from earlier although she was quick to communicate if she liked the food or not. Lexa noted how Marie’s eyes seemed to glow and her face was lightening up with a huge smile as she tasted a small honey cake. The vendor who sold this particular pastry was at the market every day and Lexa still remembered how much Costia had loved the pastries so much that Lexa had taken the time to get her one before her training sessions started when she had still been a nightblood novitiate.

They were joined by Anya when they had just reached a vendor selling warm clothes mostly made in Azgeda. The vendor was an old man who came from Azgeda, one of the few who reached the age that his hair was already greying, and he now had a young boy with him who was obviously to be trained to take over the stall someday.

The general’s eyes were warmer than usual although she looked slightly tired and Lexa highly doubted that Zora and Anya had wasted the bit of time they had together to such trivial things as resting. The old vendor had Marie stand on a small podium to be able to measure the girl without having to bend down so much.

Lexa curtly told the man that she wanted a set of fur-lined light armour for the girl as well as a few warm normal clothes and padded boots. The man nodded his consent and filed through a few piles of clothing articles. He handed Marie a few things to try on but nothing seemed to fit her well enough so he said that he would need to tailor the things the commander wanted. Lexa nodded curtly and told him to have the things delivered to the tower once he was finished and he would be payed justly for his work.

They strolled through the filled streets together. Marie’s grey eyes were still filled with wonder when she let her gaze wander over everything around her, it seemed as if her eyes could not rest on anything for a second. The girl did not even seem to notice how most people stayed still for a moment when they recognized the child as the girl who had fallen from the stars to scrutinize for themselves what could be so special about the girl. A smile was etched on the girl’s features and now that Anya was with them Marie was pointing out all she found interesting to the general with an enthusiastic tone to her voice. Anya indulged the girl and did not quell her enthusiasm. She was internally extremely grateful to see Marie smiling and obviously completely happy at the moment. Lexa felt a slight twinge of pain as she had had to dampen the girl’s spirit before in the same situation as her role as commander made it impossible for her to be so expressive with Marie in public and even a small sliver of envy that Anya was freer to do as she pleased than she probably ever would be.

 

 

Chapter 8: Chapter 71 - 80

Chapter Text

Chapter 71

Anya had been true with her prediction that the festivities would be going on for several days. It took almost a week until the people slowly started to leave Polis and travel back to their own clans. Marie had been in the streets nearly every day with either Lexa, Anya or both of them and loved every moment of it.

Lexa and Anya had both been careful not to overexert the girl and kept with walking around the streets. Marie had been to the novitiates training whenever Lexa went there but had been restricted to watching from the side-line. The girl’s grey eyes were wide when she watched the group of children spar with each other in a clearing not far from the tower. She was completely baffled when she saw Aden spar with Lexa herself and he was actually holding up and it did not look as if Lexa was holding back. When the blonde boy actually got a hit in Lexa looked most impressed with him.

Marie had taken to switching between sleeping in Anya’s or in Lexa’s quarters and this evening she was with Anya her mood soured by the training session she had watched. Anya had been busy with starting to organize the small army of volunteers who had stayed behind after the mountain and now wanted to serve under the commander only. “Was watching the nightbloods train not to your liking?” Anya asked Marie once they were alone in their quarters, the girl’s sour mood was easily spotted by the woman. Marie had pouted and looked out of the window not answering in words and even going as far as crossing her arms over her chest like a petulant child. Anya rolled her eyes at the recalcitrant child and unfastened her armour putting her sword on a table and laying a dagger under her pillow out of habit. She knew the girl long enough now to know that ignoring her in this mood was better, she would start to talk when she was ready. Anya went around the room and stocked the fire back to life in the fireplace; the air in the evening had become chilling.

When Anya had sat down at the table to eat something Marie stood up from the bed to join her, the pout absent from her face although it was still obvious that something was troubling the girl. “How old is Aden, Anya?” Marie asked. The general scrutinized the girl sitting across from her for a moment before she answered “He has seen thirteen summers, why?” Marie pulled a face and mumbled with drooping shoulders “I will never catch up…” The girl’s voice was laced with frustration as her words trailed off. Anya put her mug of tea down and suppressed another eye roll “We have had the exact same discussion before, Marie. No one expects you to miraculously catch up. You clearly possess some innate talent with throwing knives and a bow, so that will be your main weapons. Now that your injuries have finally healed we will take up your training again, after the hunt.”

“Hunt?” Marie quipped with a frown on her face. She had not been aware there would be a hunt. Anya explained that as a final part of the festivities a few important people from all clans, together with the commander herself would go on a hunt tomorrow at dawn. “We will be back before dusk” Anya assured. Lexa and she had decided that they did not want to risk Marie falling from a horse during the hunt, so the girl would remain in the tower. Lexa had also decided that the nightbloods would not be allowed to join in the hunt as well so Marie could spent the day with them, Titus had only grudgingly agreed to that.

“And you will stay here” Anya concluded her explanation. Marie’s face fell drastically at this new piece of information. Since the failed assassination attempt on Lexa Marie had not been left alone at all, always being either with Anya or Lexa.

“Titus has agreed that you can stay the day with the novitiates under his supervision” Anya did not feel it necessary to say that the bald man had only agreed when Lexa outright ordered him to do just that.

At hearing that Marie’s face fell even more, now that she had spent more time in the company of the novitiates and at various meetings with the commander she had seen how much the man obviously despised her even though he did not know her at all. “No need to look so dejected” Anya commented on her facial expression. Marie crossed her arms over her chest again a pout reappearing on her face “Titus hates me” the girl grumbled under her breath.

Anya sighed heavily not being able to deny that “Then I advise you not to give him any reason for his hate to increase. Once he gets to know you, he will realise that you are no threat to Lexa”. Marie huffed obviously not convinced in the slightest. Not knowing what else to say Anya regarded the matter closed for now and resumed her dinner.

Marie was uncharacteristically silent for the rest of the evening only picking at her food with a sullen mood. Anya knew that trying to cheer the child up would not be fruitful so she picked up the book from the nightstand after they had finished their dinner. They had noticed in the last days that now without aid of the tea Marie had big problems with getting to sleep and reading to the girl helped immensely. Nightmares were still a huge problem as well so long as the girl was allowed to cuddle up to either Anya or Lexa the nightmares were kept at bay but as soon as she rolled away in sleep they emerged immediately in full force.

Dressed in shorts and a loose shirt reserved for sleeping face clean of any paint and hair loose Anya laid down and waited for Marie to join her. The general had ceased every struggle to get the girl to sleep alone in her own bed, she had tried a few days before and had not gotten any sleep that night at all.

Although Anya gladly now served for Lexa in Polis she never felt as at home in the city as she did in the woods. So she looked forward to the hunt and being away from the city for some time at least. Marie quickly snuggled up to Anya under the furs relaxing in her strong arms as her voice lulled her to sleep only a slight time later.

Anya put the book away when she was sure that the child in her arms was really fast asleep. As much as she was personally looking forward and always enjoyed a good hunt as much did she feel unsettled about leaving the girl alone now.

Before dawn a guard knocked at their door arousing Anya immediately. Cautiously Anya extracted herself out of Marie’s grasp without waking the girl in the process. The general tiptoed around the room and dressed herself in her armour. As careful as Anya had been to not make any noise Marie started to turn around in the furs as Anya’s side started to cool down.

Dressed and ready to leave Anya sat down at the edge of the bed and put a hand on the girl’s back as she had turned on her stomach to calm her while her other hand gently glided through the girl’s blond locks. When Marie startled awake a few moments later her eyes were wide and her face settled in a frown as she noticed that Anya was already dressed to leave.

Anya had not doubt that Lexa had spoken to her oldest nightbloods to look out for Marie for the day and as much as Titus might dislike the girl he would also make sure that nothing happened to her. “You will surely have fun today with Saria and Nimo” Anya reassured her charge in a soothing tone. Marie had taken an instant liking to the two novitiates that were closest to her in age. Marie’s mouth pulled into a pout but Anya ignored the girl’s silent attempt at manipulation entirely.

“Do you want to try to sleep some more?” Anya suggested but was already sure to receive a negative answer and immediately the girl shook her head shoving the furs down her body to stand up. “Are the others even up yet?” Marie wondered sullenly at the prospect of being left back.

Anya smirked good-naturedly and gave the girl a gentle nudge “The nightbloods always rise before the sun does to start their first training session, they should return soon from it”. 

The general waited until Marie had quickly gotten washed and dressed for the day to personally escort her to the quarters of the nightbloods. While she waited Lexa joined her already dressed in armour made to blend in with the surroundings of the forest and without her red sash. When Marie returned from the bathroom and noticed Lexa the girl turned her pout to the commander and asked “Can’t I join in the hunt?” the girl’s grey eyes pleading. Anya could spot easily the effect the girl’s demeanour had on Lexa and answered for the commander in a strict tone that signalled the end of the conversation “No, you will stay here in the tower!” The child still looked at Lexa hopeful probably having spotted that the commander would be more easily swayed in the matter but Anya’s next words had the girl cease her pleading immediately “I am sure a guard can stand post in front of this room if it is better to your liking to stay the day here alone” Anya threatened knowing that the girl would never want to be left alone in this room for a complete day. Marie shook her head at once and quickly finished dressing.

Lexa watched the girl move about the room with a slight flash of guilt, it was obvious the girl felt insecure about being left back. But the healers had been quite clear on the fact that it was imperative that the girl did not acquire any kind of new injury to her hip or she might end up paralyzed as they could not say for sure if the holes in her bones were completely closed. Hunting could sometimes get chaotic and the girl did not possess the skill in riding yet she would need to keep up and taking the girl up on her horse would only slow her down.

They escorted Marie to the floor reserved for the nightblood novitiates in silence. The girl’s mood still obviously sullen. Just as they entered the floor did the nightbloods return from their first training session of the day with the exception of Kyla and Ryno who did not yet share all the training sessions of the older novitiates. But the two youngest nightbloods had also been waiting for the rest of the group for breakfast. The novitiates usually ate their meals all together on their floor which was heavily guarded and Titus would return to them once it was time for another lesson or training session.

Lexa greeted all of the children with an honest smile on her face and the novitiates were as happy to see their commander as they always were. Anya could still remember how different the atmosphere was between the previous commander and the group of novitiates to which Lexa had belonged. The man had kept his distance from the children and they all were completely respectful to him, none of them would have smiled at the hard man as these children now did for Lexa. Anya lowly cautioned Marie to behave herself the day and gently nudged the girl to join the other children at the table as the girl had not eaten yet as well.

The commander bid all of them farewell and the children wished them luck for their hunt. Marie was the only one not smiling as she watched Lexa and Anya leave together. The girl’s appetite was next to none existing and she only picked at her food without eating much. Saria, the ten year old nightblood from Delfikru, sat down next to Marie and smiled at her. “Titus said we will have the afternoon to ourselves” the girl proclaimed with a huge exited smile, it was rare for the novitiates to have much free time. Marie shrugged at the girl’s words still not feeling any better and her eyes still hefted to the door Anya and Lexa had left through.

It was the eight year old June who approached Marie next. Even though the girl was still very young, she was perceptive of those around her and easily picked up on the other girl’s sullen mood. “They will both return safely” the dark haired girl promised “And the time will only pass slower if you sulk”.

Nimo, who was nine years old and still a head shorter then June, sat down across from Marie with his trademark lopsided grin “She is right, you know. And after the lessons we will play hide and seek” the boy’s dark eyes were sparkling with mirth at the prospect. “Have you played that before?” Ryno always curious quipped in suddenly. Marie shook her head in the negative, the game was pretty straightforward in its name so she had an idea what the game entailed. But she still asked “How do you play that?” her words had the effect she had hoped for, which was to get the others to talk and stop trying to cheer her up.

“You really never played that?” Nimo double checked with confusion on his face, he had been born in the Glowing Forest, and hide and seek had been his favourite before his blood had been detected and he had been taken to Polis to train. “It is easy” he started to explain as Marie just shook her head “One is appointed to be the seeker. The seeker will have to wait for a defined time span with closed eyes. In this time span the rest hides away. You win if the seeker fails to find you, or if you are the seeker you win when you found all the others”. Marie listened intently to the boy’s words and nodded her understanding “Can you hide wherever you want?” she asked after a moment. Ryno nodded enthusiastically “Yeah and the more creative you are, the harder you are to find”.

Titus interrupted them when he came to collect the group of novitiates for their next lesson. The bald man narrowed his eyes for a moment at Marie who immediately lowered her eyes and looked at the floor the slight smile wiped from her face completely.  

The group of children immediately scrambled to follow their teacher in silence, even the smallest once knowing no to antagonize the bald man on purpose. Marie mutely walked next to Nimo her head ducked low trying not to garner the attention of Titus if avoidable.

The flamekeeper escorted the novitiates and Marie into a room on another floor of the tower. It looked to be a library of sort, with shelves filled with various books lining the walls. A few tables and chairs were placed in another corner of the huge room and the children all took their usual places at the tables, Saria guiding Marie with her and offering her a chair at her table. Marie gave the other girl a grateful smile and waited what would happen now. She had never accompanied the nightbloods to lessons not held by Lex herself and Titus was making her uneasy.

The lesson dealt with the history of the clans after the bombs had destroyed the former world. Marie listened intently to Titus words. She had had some minor history lessons on the Ark but they had still dealt with the history long before the bombs fell.

Marie learned that in the first years after the bombs fell there had been many more clans, most smaller and vastly distributed through the ruins of the old world. Over time clans had either banded together or been conquered by stronger clans in battle to form the clans as they were existing now. All in all Marie found the lesson much more interesting than she had anticipated.

Afterwards Titus taught the nightblood children English. As it was the language of the warriors it was imperative that every commander knew it. This part of the lesson seemed to trudge on forever for Marie and she had difficulties with remaining still on her seat out of boredom. She had grown up with the language so she knew everything Titus was teaching of course. The oldest nightbloods were also fluent in English but they had better patience in repeating lessons, they had long learned and waiting for the younger ones to catch up to their skill.

After what felt like hours to Marie Titus finally announced that they would be brought back to their quarters to have a quick lunch now. Marie’s stomach had started to rumble from hunger quite some time ago not having eaten much at all at breakfast.

Lunch war really quick and Titus soon returned to bring them back to the library. Marie silently wondered why they had not just eaten in the library. Lowly she asked Nymo who was walking next to her. The Asian looking boy shrugged his shoulders “It is always done that way” was his only verbal answer.

 

 

Chapter 72

Back in the library the children took a seat in their places and Titus resumed teaching. This lesson now was a writing practise. Marie was pleased to see that they were practising in Trigedasleng so she was able to really practise now as well. Titus completely ignored the presence of the girl all together as he made his rounds through the rows of children checking their spellings. He just went by Marie’s chair as if she was invisible not sparing the girl a glance at all. Marie clenched her teeth silently, she would have liked for someone to check for her spelling but she could envision Titus’ reaction if she were to ask for help.

The lesson went over relatively quickly and Titus let them go with the order to return to their quarters. The others were way more cheerful now, as that had obviously been the sign that they now had the rest of the day free.

The others all knew that it would be some time until dinner so they wanted to play the first round of hide and seek already. Marie nodded eagerly glad to finally move again after having sat still for most of the day.

Aden would be the first one to be the seeker and Marie together with the other children scrambled away once the blonde boy started to loudly count. Marie quickly went through the nightbloods quarters noticing that the rooms spread over the whole floor. There were so many places to hide that Marie found it difficult to decide where to go.

Her decision was cut short when she could hear faint footsteps walking down the corridor in her direction. Quickly the girl opened the door to the balcony and just hid behind the wall after closing the door behind her.

Her hiding place proved to be not so well as Aden found her very quickly. Fortunately for Marie Nymo who had trailed behind her had been found even earlier so she would not have to be the next seeker. Aden was obviously very good at the game and found each and every one after only a slight amount of time.

This time Marie left in the other direction and her steps guided her to the corridor leading to the elevator. A shift of guards was obviously taking place right now and the previous guards were just stepping into the elevator. Marie quickened her pace and entered the elevator just before the doors glided closed. The guards barely spared the girl any attention and the elevator seemed to stop every floor to let in another batch of guards. After six floors Marie had enough and slipped from the elevator into an unknown floor.

As on every floor guards were lining the hall in front of the elevator. But the three guards who stood post on this floor seemed caught up in an argument between themselves. They had not even looked up when the elevator opened on their floor. Quietly Marie strode to the first door in sight and slipped into the next corridor, she doubted the guards had taken any notice of her.

When she heard footsteps louder this time echoing through the hall she had just left Marie quickened her pace thinking that maybe Nymo had already caught up with her.

The girl hastened around a corner and promptly collided with someone. The force of the impact made her stumble in her steps and she would have fallen over if the one she had run into had not reacted quickly and steadied her.

The stranger let his hand fall away when the girl had regained her footing. Marie looked up with slightly pink tinged cheeks apologizing immediately “I am sorry. I had not seen you” the girl’s words were honest but her eyes widened when she took in the features of the man she had run into. Marie looked up into piercing blue eyes framed by thick facial scars that immediately identified the man as Azgeda. Thick brown locks nestled around his face obscuring some of the scars.

The man’s eyes seemed to burn into hers for a moment before he casually said “Would have been hard to see me around the corner with the speed you were running”. Marie quickly let her mouth close with a quite snap her eyes seemed to be drawn to the scars on his face.

When she heard footsteps again Marie inched away from the man trying to look behind him for a door to hide behind.

“What are you doing on this floor?” the man asked in a casual tone his face neutral as he blocked the girl’s path. “I am playing hide and seek” Marie quickly explained. The man’s eyebrows rose in confusion “Hide and seek?” he echoed with a dubious note to his voice. “Yeah, with the novitiates” Marie elaborated carefully unsure if talking to the man was save. As Marie turned her head back to hear for the footsteps from the other side of the room her hair fell over her shoulder revealing the sign of the commander tattooed into her skin. The man’s eyes flashed with recognition and he offered “You can hide in my room. I am sure no one will be searching for you there”. Marie was biting her lip obviously unsure if to accept the offer or better to deny but as the footsteps got louder behind her and the man held open a door that had been obscured behind him Marie blew caution to the wind and quickly ducked under the man’s arm into the room.

The room was sparsely furnished with a narrow bed laden with a few furs, a small trunk stood in front of the bed and a small table with two stools stood in another corner of the room. A door on the other side of the room probably led outside to a balcony.

Marie stood awkwardly in the middle of the room unsure if she should just turn around and leave again. The man sensed the girl’s obvious hesitation and poured a mug of water from a jug on the table offering the mug to the child with an open kind expression on his face.

Marie cautiously accepted the mug of water and drunk a sip from the cool liquid as her eyes kept on darting to the door.

The man purposefully kept his face neutral as he addressed the girl in a kind tone “I have failed to introduce myself to you. I am Roan” Marie looked at Roan with big grey eyes trying to judge if the man had any ulterior motives to be kind to her.

“I am ...” she tried to reciprocate the introduction but Roan smirked at the girl “You are Marie, second to the commander. Everyone in Polis knows who you are” he assured her.

Marie narrowed her eyes at the man sitting casually across from her as she still stood in the middle of the room.

The man needed some time to break the undeniable tension between them but in the end Marie gingerly sat down on the edge of the bed. Roan asked her about living with the stars. Marie was already used to people being curious of her origins and she voluntarily supplied him with the information he wanted to have.

Marie barely registered how the time passed. Roan seemed intrigued by the way of life they had had on the Ark.

She had long ago relaxed on the bed having her legs crossed on the lumpy mattress and animatedly describing how they had landed on earth.

A cool breath wafted through the room from a crack in the window and Marie noticed with a furrowed brow that the sun was already setting having all but vanished from the horizon. “Anya said there will be snow soon” Marie said after a moment of silence.

“You have probably never seen snow before?” Roan mussed. His mother had sent a message to him by the Azgeda representatives during the festivities. The woman was sure that Ontari was ready to take over the coalition and wanted to know any possible weaknesses they could use to strike against the commander. He had hoped speaking with the commander’s second would offer him a chance to find such a weakness. But somehow he had taken an instant liking to the child it was obvious that she was good-natured and she was extremely expressive in her emotions, she was somehow purer and definitely softer than the children who had grown up on the ground.

Even though Roan wished for nothing more than to be able to leave Polis and return to Azgeda for very personal reasons he doubted that Ontari as the commander would be a good thing. Ontari would be nothing more than a mere puppet of his mother. After all the time he had been forced to spent in Polis Roan knew first-hand how much the people of Polis loved Lexa kom Trikru as their commander. In addition he had to silently admit that he could understand that, Lexa was a good commander, the first commander who ever regarded all the clans as equally important and did not just care for her own clan to thrive.

The girl confirmed that she had never seen snow before and was obviously curious about what snow was like. Roan tried his best to describe how the air seemed to even smell purer just after fresh snow had fallen. He retold the experiences he had made as a child when he was seldom allowed to play in it before the lasting frost came and turned the beautiful white snow into deathly ice plans. He did not speak to the girl of the dangers and biting cold accompanied by the winter in Azgeda. The territory of Azgeda stretched far into the north where the snow never melted the whole year.

Marie completely had forgotten the time and when she started to jaw and noticed that it was now truly dark outside her face fell noticeably. “What is it?” Roan asked the girl. “Anya had said they would return before dawn” Marie said looking sullen again. “A hunt can easily take longer than predicted” Roan assured the girl’s obvious worry.

“I guess you should return to your quarters then” Roan suggested. Marie’s face fell even more at the prospect of spending the night alone worry taking over her mind that something might have happened. Roan graciously offered “You can always stay here until the commander and her general return”. “For just a little bit?” Marie requested. Roan nodded “You wanted to hear about the ice bears, did you not?” Marie immediately nodded and listened to Roan’s melodic deep voice. As the man’s narration kept going on his voice started to lull the girl to sleep.

Unbeknown to Marie the group of nightbloods were in uproar. They had kept on searching for the blonde girl for hours but as the sun finally set they were pretty sure that they had searched their complete floor at least twice and there was no trace of Marie to be found.

Anya and Lexa returned after a fruitful hunt long after dawn. Both of them were grimy from the long hunt and exhausted but Anya was instantly wide awake when she found her quarters empty with no sign of Marie ever having been in the room at all.

The general went over to the commander’s quarters and entered without knocking hoping against hope that Marie might have waited in Lexa’s quarters. The commander shrugged out of her coat and whirled around at the sound of her door opening sword already in hand.

Anya quickly looked around the room a feeling of panic settling deep into her bones “Marie was not in my quarters” she simply stated and Lexa instantly showed alertness.

“Maybe she stayed with the novitiates?” Lexa suggested already moving back to the door to go looking for Marie.

When they reached the floor that housed the nightblood novitiates they were met by Aden, Kato and Thalu. All three of them looked as if they had just been caught doing something wrong. “Why are you not in your beds?” Lexa immediately asked in a strict tone.

It was Aden who answered her “We are looking for Marie” his voice sounded awfully guilty and Anya felt her heart drop as Lexa seemed to freeze for a moment. “What do you mean looking for her?” Lexa demanded to know her voice sharp.

Aden gulped visibly they were not often confronted with Lexa’s ire “We have been playing hide and seek, but we cannot find her”. “When have you last seen her?” Anya interjected with urgency in her voice. Aden looked even guiltier as he said “Since before dinner…” The general silently concluded that that had been over six hours ago, the girl could be everywhere after this time.

“We searched through the whole floor three times” Thalu lowly quipped in “She might not have known that we only played on this floor.”

“You all go straight to bed” Lexa commander sharply she knew that if the novitiates had not found Marie on this floor than she simply was not on this floor anymore.

“Who was on duty here through the day?” the commander went over to the guards posted at the elevator and quickly questioned them. The men sent them to the guard house and there Lexa questioned around until they at least knew for sure that the girl had probably slipped into the elevator during a guard shift that only happened at this time simultaneously on the top ten floors of the tower. The guards which had been posted around the entrances of the tower had not seen the girl leave the tower so she would be somewhere within the top ten floors.

Titus had been summoned by Lexa to ask why he had not told guards to look for her second only to hear that flamekeeper did not even know the girl was missing at all. She angrily sent him away, she had trusted Titus to supervise her together with the novitiates and now the girl was missing.

Anya had stayed in the guard house and assembled a few guards to help looking for Marie. Although the guards at the entrances had said they had not seen the girl leave did not mean that someone might have paid them enough money to make them look away.

It was obvious that both Lexa and Anya were deeply worried as they returned to the tower to help searching the ten floors. Gustus waited for them at the elevator as he had heard that Marie was missing and wanted to help.

They had searched three floors and had found absolutely no sign of the girl and waited for the elevator to take them to the next floor. “What if she was taken?” Anya finally voiced the fearful thoughts that had plagued her. “We will find her” Lexa assured with a confidence belied by the uncertain expression in her green eyes.

Next they searched in the floor housing a few political prisoners. Roan had already heard the commotion on the floor as the guards were questioned and he stood in front of his door with his arms crossed over his chest. Marie still slept soundly in his bed.

“Have you lost something?” Roan asked in a meaningful voice. He could see both Anya’s and Lexa’s face darkening at his question. Lexa’s hand tightened on the handle of her dagger while Anya strode up to him “What have you done to her?”

 Roan shook his head holding his hands up in surrender “Nothing” he said placating “I have only kept her company. She is unharmed” with that he opened the door to his room. Anya rushed into the door before it had swung open and found the girl lying under furs in the small bed. Roan had obviously stayed sitting at the table and had let the girl sleep. Lexa had Roan pressed against the doorframe a dagger against his throat. “I have not kept her here against her will” Roan claimed immediately.

Anya shoved the furs from the girl’s body and gently took the sleeping girl up in her arms. Lexa’s eyes were still burning into Roan’s as she let the dagger sink down again. “We will speak about that later” Lexa proclaimed firmly.

Although Anya was relived to feel for herself that Marie was well anger flared up in her chest. She could not understand under which circumstances Marie might have landed with the prince of Azgeda. Marie started to stir just as Anya placed the girl down on the bed of their quarters, Lexa had mutely followed the woman into the room.

“You are back” Marie mumbled sleepily rubbing at her eyes relieve obvious. Lexa nodded while Anya clenched her teeth “Why were you with the prince of Azgeda, Marie?” the commander questioned sitting down on the edge of the bed.

“Prince of Azgeda?” Marie asked back her brow furrowed “He had just said his name is Roan”.

Anya huffed irritated at the answer. “What have you spoken about?” Lexa wanted to know. “He was interested in living on the Ark, like everyone always is” Marie added quickly seeing Anya’s expression darken even more “And he told me about snow and living in Azgeda”.

“Have you learned nothing?!” Anya thundered suddenly making the girl jump at her tone. “After what has happened with Arla, you should know better!” the general continued to rant endlessly. The girl got smaller and smaller on the bed as Anya’s voice thundered through the room. She was soon crying her shoulders shaking but Anya seemed to take no notice of the impact her ranting had.

“Anya” Lexa intervened after a few minutes her voice sharp and Anya instantly fell silent. “He … he … I … have … not …s…said … anything” the girl sobbed out between tears. Lexa tried to soothe the girl as Anya poured herself a mug of water to cool off her temper.

 

 

Chapter 73

Tears were still rolling down Marie’s cheeks as Anya gulped down the mug of water to extinguish the burning anger flaring through her veins. She had been so worried that something had happened to the girl and finding her asleep in the bed of none other than prince Roan of Azgeda had flared an irrational anger inside of her.

Marie’s eyes were huge and her sobs echoed through the room. Lexa had sat down next to the girl and wiped the tears from her cheeks with gentle fingers and kind eyes soothing the girl under her breath. Anya’s anger had quite obviously frightened the child and it was clear she did not understand the source of her mentor’s anger to begin with.

She doubted Marie was a child that would respond well to words spoken to her in anger Lexa was sure speaking with the girl in a calm demeanour and explaining the reasons for their anger would be more fruitful. Lexa had rarely seen Anya lose her composure like she just had but it only showed how deeply the woman obviously cared for Marie.

Anya’s eyes still blazed angrily as she turned around back to face them and with a mute huff the woman stormed from the room without another word. Marie looked back after her mentor blinking her eyes in confusion. Lexa just sighed positive that Anya would return when she had cooled off probably after destroying something on the training field which would be deserted at this time of the night.

The commander stood up from the bed and offered a hand to Marie to help her up “It might take some time before Anya returns. It is late, you can sleep in my quarters for now” she offered. Marie hesitantly took the offered hand letting Lexa lead her from the room “I did not mean to make her angry…” the girl said as she followed Lexa down the corridor looking back to the elevator now and then.

“Hush” Lexa said with the ghost of a smile tilting at her lips “We will talk about this tomorrow. All that matters now is that you are safe”. Guards opened the door to the commander’s quarters and Lexa nudged Marie to lay down on the bed telling her that she would quickly wash up. She would take a bath in the morning when there was more time but she desperately needed to get out of the grimy and still clammy clothes.

Marie had laid down under the furs obediently when Lexa returned from the bathroom the girl was rolled together tightly into a small shaking lump after furs. Lexa sighed as the shaking clearly indicated that the child was still crying. Lexa felt exhausted and honestly just wanted to sleep so she laid down next to the girl and simply pulled her smaller body against herself. Marie wound her arms around Lexa immediately and the commander did not have to say anything at all carding her fingers gently through the girl’s hair was enough and Marie drifted off to sleep a few moments later.

Lexa startles awake to the soft sound of the door to her quarters being opened and closed cautiously, she is instantly alert as her fingers search for the dagger under her pillow. Marie is still lying cuddled up to her and has not woken yet. She had the dagger ready to defend both of them in her fingers when Anya comes into her line of sight. Through the dimly lit-up room Lexa can make out that the other woman has also changed out of her armour and her steps were near silent because she was barefoot. Lexa lets the dagger slide back under the pillow and lets the tension drain from her body, she nods to Anya once and notices how her features are edged with worry and other emotions she cannot quiet pin down at the moment as she stares down at the girl curled against Lexa. Careful not to wake Marie Lexa manoeuvred out under her arms and slipped from the bed.

Anya took her cue and followed Lexa to the other side of the long room where a fire is still burning low in a fireplace in front of a sofa and two big comfy armchairs. Being more in the light Lexa could see that the anger had all but faded completely from Anya’s expression but she was perplexed to notice fear in its stead.

Lexa sat down on one of the armchairs crossing her legs over each other casually and simply looked at Anya calmly waiting for her former mentor to tell her what was obviously bothering her so much. Anya was clearly agitated as she sat down on the armchair across from Lexa a few moments later running her fingers through her hair in an uncharacteristically movement.

Anya remained silent for another seemingly endless stretch of time before she finally grumbled “I am afraid of losing her…” her words trailed off with a grimace edged into her features as if voicing them out loud had hurt her physically.

“Are you not allowed to be?” Lexa questioned lowly in an even tone without any judgement to it. Anya huffed “She is our second, but it feels as if she is …”

“…more?” Lexa supplied knowingly noting how her former mentor had included herself in the statement as Anya nodded her brown eyes were stormy with emotion. After a moment the commander sighed into the heavy silence that had filled the space between them “I guess she was always more than just a second to you right from the beginning” Lexa said. Anya met her green eyes stare with narrowed eyes as Lexa smirked “You would not have volunteered to take her on as your second if you had not felt some kind of connection to Marie”. “Possibly” Anya begrudgingly admitted “but there had still been Tris. Seeing Tris die has hurt more than I care to admit and just thinking about finding Marie dead hurts even more…” Lexa tried to give Anya a reassuring smile but it felt forced even to herself because she knew that she could not make a promise that would reassure Anya but she still spoke the words “We will just have to try to protect her then.” Anya’s brown eyes reconnected with hers as if to echo “Really?” with a teasing smirk the atmosphere lighter around them again. Lexa sighed audibly “That is all we can do” and her former mentor nodded and Lexa could see her reigning in her emotions once more her face becoming less expressive again as the woman straightened her back. Anya was still dressed in the grimy clothes from the hunt so she retreated to her own quarters even though Lexa softly offered for the other woman to stay in the commander’s quarters.

When Lexa stepped back to the bed she was met with a pair of grey eyes staring intently at her. “How much have you heard?” Lexa simply asked the girl as she laid down next to her again. Marie was chewing on her lip as she questioned Lexa completely ignoring the question she had been asked “Anya was angry because she was worried that something had happened to me?” wonder was evident in the girl’s voice and Lexa barely suppressed a snort in response. “Of course” Lexa answered calmly “She cares deeply for you” she added and as she gently pushed a blonde lock away from the girl’s face she said as an afterthought “We both do…”

Marie’s eyes were glistening with unshed tears as she repulsively threw her arms around Lexa’s form hugging the woman tightly. Lexa smiled into the girl’s blonde hair as she laid her chin on top of her head “Sleep, Marie. It will be dawn soon”.

Lexa had been corrected and all too soon the sun rose again starting another day. Anya barged into the commander’s quarters just as Lexa had entangled herself from Marie who had just huffed and turned around pulling a fur high over her head to block out the light. Her former mentor must have woken long before them as she was already scrubbed clean from the grim of the hunt. Lexa passed by Anya and quickly told a guard on the corridor to send for handmaidens to prepare a bath when she returned she addressed the other woman telling her Marie had heard what they had spoken about the previous night. Anya sighed non-audibly as she would have clearly preferred it otherwise.

Marie had set up in the bed catching the hint that she would not get the chance to continue to sleep. Her eyes still looked slightly puffy probably from a mixture of exhaustion and crying. Anya looked visibly calmer compared to the turmoil obvious on her face in the previous night.

“Are you still angry with me?” Marie asked in an almost non-audible way looking even smaller and younger all of a sudden as she gazed up at Anya. Lexa could see Anya’s jaw tightening as she ground her teeth together even though her eyes softened minutely.

“Why don’t you explain to both of us how you ended up in prince Roan’s quarters?” Lexa proposed wanting to intervene before Anya got hot-headed again. She had no intention of seeing a repetition of last night.

Marie seemed to gulp once before she straightened herself as she looked up at both of them with honest eyes “The novitiates said we would play hide and seek after lunch” Marie narrated “I had never played that. Ryno said we could hide wherever we want. I did not know just on their level…” the girl’s words trailed off riddled with guilt.

“And how did you end up with Roan?” Lexa asked again. She had already gathered what Marie had just said from the worried words Aden had told them last night as they searched for the child.

“I just searched for a better place to hide” Marie started again twisting her fingers nervously “The elevator opened and I just slipped in and left again after a few floors…” the girl continued “and the guards on the floor were arguing, I don’t think they saw me and I just went into the first door I could find. I heard footsteps behind me so I hurried and as I turned a corner I ran into him…” the girl’s words trailed off again.

Anya seemed to have problems to reign in her temper but Lexa was unsure if she was angry at Marie or at the guards who had obviously not payed any attention to their duty.

“And you thought it a good idea to go with him?” Anya sneered down at the girl which immediately made Marie wince.

“I…I did not really…” the girl stuttered under Anya’s scrutinizing stare “He offered that I could hide in his room” she finally settled on even though Marie had to admit that even to her own ears that did not sound like a valid reason.

Anya suppressed a growl out of anger bringing out through clenched teeth “Have your parents not taught you to not trust strangers?!” the woman’s tone was sharp.

Marie shook her head with a guilty expression on her face. Lexa looked at the girl trying to assess if she spoke true, no child would usually trust a stranger from another clan this easily, but as she thought about the situation on the Ark she doubted that had been any need to caution their children in this regard. Anya seemed to have come to the same silent confusion as she pinched the bridge of her nose in agitation, keeping the girl save was getting harder by the day.

“And what have you talked about?” Lexa wanted to know next hoping that the girl had been at least cautious with her words. Marie instantly replied “He wanted to know about living in the sky, like everyone else. And later he told me about living in the snow and ice”.

“Did you talk about me?” the commander questioned to what Marie immediately shook her head in the negative “about the Mountain?” another shake of the girl’s head. Lexa nodded in acceptance of the answers just as the door to her quarters swung open and Titus glided into the room. As her old teacher spotted Marie sitting in the bed she noticed a flash of disappointment before he masked his emotions. She narrowed her eyes at the bald man not absolutely convinced that he might have hoped that Marie somehow disappeared if he looked the other way.

Anya had crossed her arms over her chest nonchalantly and openly glared at the man and Lexa was sure her former mentor was having similar thoughts.

“Heda” Titus addressed her formally “Prince Roan is asking for an audience”. Although his tone did not betray his feelings on the matter Lexa could detect his doubt to Roan’s intention in the man’s eyes as Lexa raised an eyebrow at the man in question. The man had no doubt heard that Marie was found within the prince’s quarters.

Lexa finally nodded as handmaidens entered the room carrying buckets with water into the bathroom “Tell him that I will see him in two candlemarks in the throne room”. The bald man opened his mouth as if to argue with her obviously thought better of it and mutely nodded dismissing himself from the room.

Anya watched the man retreat glaring at his bald head as he disappeared from the room and she turned to Lexa after the doors had closed again “Let me be there when you tell him that he will have to teach Marie”. The commander shook her head at her previous mentor with fond amusement and excused herself to the bathroom. 

After both Lexa and Marie had gotten ready for the day and all three of them had shared a quick breakfast in the commander’s quarters they made their way to the throne room together as Lexa wanted Marie present for the audience with Roan.

Roan was already waiting for them in the throne room when the doors were opened for Lexa. The man was flanked by guards and he was not visibly armed.

Marie had somehow found an innate trust to the man the night before and tentatively smiled at him. When Anya noticed that she growled under her breath in warning and Marie immediately lowered her eyes to the floor with a guilty expression. Roan had met Marie’s eyes with a kind and open expression which immediately closed off in reaction to the general’s growl. Lexa kept her own face carefully blank while Anya openly glared at the man with unveiled distrust.

“To the kid’s defence” Roan started surprising both women with his opening words “she had not wanted to stay with me at all at first”. Lexa raised a questioning brow at the prince after she had sat down on her throne and as Anya opened her mouth to speak the commander shook her head immediately silencing the general “And has she told you anything useful?” They all knew that Lexa meant information useful against herself and the accusation that he had tried to gather some from Marie hanging in the air between them.

“No” the prince simply said looking at the girl minutely who still had her grey eyed stare glued to the tiled floor “Although I do not deny that I had the intention to get useful information from her”. Marie’s eyes snapped up at his words and he could easily detect the betrayal the girl felt in them. Anya’s fingers tightened around the handle of her dagger as she pushed down the urge to slit the man’s throat with it for his attempt to use Marie in such a way again.

The commander stared down at the prince of Azgeda with a calculating stare trying to judge if the man spoke true but her intuition seemed to agree that he had not lied. Which brought the question up as to why the man had asked for an audience as she doubted he would have gone to all the trouble to tell them that he had somehow tried to manipulate their second unsuccessfully.  She simply opted to wait until the prince would say for what he had come here.

Roan had watched the guards posted around the room and in front of it noticing that all were loyal Trikru so he started to speak again “I have asked for this audience to strike a deal”.

Lexa just dipped her chin indicating for the man to continue. Roan had hoped to be able to read at least a willingness to make a deal with him but he could not read a single thing from the commander’s stony blank face and the general was not much better only showing distrust and probably a thirst to kill him on the spot.

“I have information that you will find most useful” Roan boldly stated not bending under the commander’s unnerving stare. “Of what nature?” Lexa questioned her tone nonchalant. “Of something my mother keeps hidden from you” the man answered his eyes daring “Something which might end your legacy”. Lexa’s face remained blank as she processed the words although her mind was in turmoil. What could Nia be hiding that would threaten her legacy?

“And what do you desire in return?” the commander asked after a meaningful tense silence. Roan exhaled audibly before he answered “I need to return to Azgeda”. His statement was only met with a raised brow from the commander clearly not impressed with his demand. His exile from Azgeda had been part of Nia’s surrender to the coalition and she would not lift it without good reason.

 

“I cannot challenge my mother from Polis” Roan finally elaborated and when no reaction came from the commander he added through clenched teeth “Or have her somehow summoned here so that I can state my challenge”.

Lexa slightly cocked her head “And why do you desire to raise as king of Azgeda?”

It was obvious that Roan was battling against his own temper he had obviously thought the commander would be easier to bargain with “Azgeda could thrive in the coalition” was all he was willing to say.

“And you don’t think Azgeda will do so under your mother?” Lexa questioned in a calm voice.

Roan could not suppress the snort from escaping “We both know that my mother is just waiting for an excuse to reject the coalition”

Lexa simply nodded her head in agreement at the statement “And you would not?” her eyes were burning into his daring him to lie.

The man’s eyes flitted over to the girl standing slightly behind Anya for a moment before he proclaimed “No, I would not.” The commander believed although she was itching to know how Marie had somehow influenced the man’s decision, something told her that the hours he had spent with her last night had led to him now standing in front of her.

“If I find your information as useful as you claim” Lexa carefully stated seeing hope flicker in the blue eyes of the prince “you may have your deal”.

 

 

 

Chapter 74

The commander had dismissed Roan soon after his audience. Her mind was racing with thoughts. If what Roan claimed proofed to be true she desperately needed to find Clarke.

Anya’s lips had been pressed together with more force with every word the prince had said. “Do you believe him?” the general turned to Lexa after the doors of the throne room had been closed behind the prince of Azgeda.

Lexa nodded her green eyes reflecting the storm of thoughts in her head “If he really wants to enthrone his mother and become king it would not be in his interest to lie to me”.

“Why is it so bad if Azgeda has a nightblood?” Marie quipped in having picked up on the tenseness in Lexa and Anya but not understanding where the problem was really.

“When I united all clans together as one coalition it was agreed upon that all nightblood children would be brought to Polis and be taught here” Lexa explained the girl’s question.

“The Azgeda nightblood would be nothing more than Nia’s puppet” Anya added “The coalition would fall apart and Azgeda would try to rule over all the other clans”.

“So you will bring the nightblood to Polis to train?” Marie questioned after she nodded with a contemplative expression.

Both Anya and Lexa looked mildly shocked at the innocent question as both their instincts had told them to send assassins before the nightblood could become a threat to Lexa’s position as commander. “I do not know yet, Marie” Lexa settled on a truthful answer.

“Calling the nightblood here is risky” Anya commented after a moment of silence and she waited another moment before she added “If Nia somehow got Wanheda’s power…”

Lexa seemed to stiffen but she nodded to her old mentor’s words as she knew them to be true. If the queen of Azgeda had Clarke the clans would all back her up if she were to challenge the commander.

“Have the scouts found traces of Wanheda?” Lexa asked after another moment of contemplation. She had ordered scouts to subtly look for Clarke. The commander knew that sending to many people to search the blonde Sky leader would only lead to calling more attention to Clarke. The other clans would think that she also wanted to find Wanheda for her power and not to make sure the blonde girl survived. Her blue eyes filled with accusation and betrayal flickered before Lexa’s vision momentarily.

Another thing nagged at her mind. If she were to die soon and Azgeda rose to power she knew without a single shred of doubt that Nia would never work with Skykru but rather eliminate the whole clan as her first show of power which would also include Marie. She needed to secure an alliance with Skykru and not just the flimsy ceasefire that was still intact after the Mountain.

“We will travel to TonDC” Lexa suddenly announced. Anya nodded “But is leaving Polis so soon wise?” The corners of Lexa’s mouth pulled up slightly “Nia cannot challenge me, if I am not there”.

Anya had an answering smirk on her face while Marie just watched their exchange “Titus will definitely not like that” the general noted with an undertone of glee in her voice. Lexa subtly rolled her eyes “He cannot object to me wanting to see how the rebuilding progresses”.

The commander had met with Titus shortly after that while Marie accompanied Anya to the guard house assembling a small party that would travel with them. Anya also organized with vendors to pack together supplies needed for the upcoming winter that the commander intended to gift to TonDC and offer to Skykru. The general also sent a messenger ahead of them to Indra informing the chief of TonDC that the commander would arrive in the next days. Indra had sent regular messengers with updates on the rebuilding and also included that a tentative contact between TonDC and Skykru remained.

Titus was as Anya had predicted not pleased with Lexa’s plan to travel to TonDC. The commander kept the fact that she also planned to make contact with Skykru to speak about a more lasting alliance to herself. She also ordered Titus to send a few spies into Nia’s rank and to find out what they could about the girl the queen kept always close to herself as Roan had told them. Titus had wanted to know why she was interested in the girl but Lexa had just told him that she had her reasons, somehow unwilling to engage him just yet. She was sure her former mentor would immediately want to eliminate the girl but Lexa wanted to know for sure if it might be an option to bring her to Polis and train her as her blood demanded. She could still hear his tirade after her conclave where she had chosen to let Luna escape without having warriors hunt her down and kill her she doubted his attitude would have changed yet.

The preparations for their journey took a full day. Roan had asked for another audience but the commander had denied to see him again just sending a guard back telling him that “it takes as long as it takes”. Marie was excited to start their journey after Anya had told her that she would be getting a horse for herself at least for part of the way. She had not been on a horse since before the Mountain and was nearly buzzing with energy as she waited for Lexa and Anya to finish dressing for the travel.

Marie’s warmer clothes had been delivered to the tower just the day prior and the girl was now dressed in warmer fur-lined boots and had a heavy coat draped over her shoulders. Anya had braided the girl’s blond hair for her in the morning and included a few metal beads in her braids that had dark blue stones imbedded in them.

Lexa had shortly spoken with her novitiates telling them that she would be away from Polis for a few days. All of them wished her luck for their travels and to return safely. She had just given a few last minutes instructions to Titus who would remain behind in Polis to handle the everyday meetings in her absence.

Anya and Marie were waiting for the commander to join them at the stables. The general had presented their second with a hazelnut brown mare that was known to be as meek as a lamb so the horse should be easily manageable for the girl. Marie stood at the horse’s head and was gently running her gloved fingers over its muzzle to which the horse neighed in obvious appreciation.

“How long can speaking with Titus take?” Marie grumbled obviously annoyed with the prolonged wait to Anya. Anya narrowed her eyes looking down at the girl while Gustus and Ryder who stood nearby and watched the exchange both had a smirk on their faces, both of them had grown to like the blonde girl.

Marie chose to watch the horse more closely as she noticed Anya’s disapproving glare. The situation was dissolved as the commander joined their party with quick purposeful strides her coat and red sash swinging behind her.

“Mount up” the commander addressed all the members of their small group as she accepted the reigns of her black mare from a young boy who was probably learning at the stables. Anya crouched down next to Marie quickly offering her hands as a boost to mount the big horse. The woman’s hands quickly steadied Marie as the girl had swung her legs over the horses back with too much force and nearly fell over the other side again. Lexa and her had agreed to let Marie ride on her own on the easier part of the journey but they would keep close to the girl should she get problems with the horse, one of them could always take Marie on their horses if needed.

The first few hours of their ride went over quickly. Marie was grateful that Lexa had had warmer clothes made for her as the wind had gotten a cold bite and her face felt already pretty cold from exposure to the wind. Her hazelnut horse which she had dubbed Brownie in her head was really a kind animal. The horse seemed to follow more the others then react to her pulling on the reigns. So Marie let her attention quickly slide from actually trying to control the horse to the surroundings. After they had left Polis they travelled a long distance over an open grassy landscape before trees started to appear again. At first only single trees and then they reached woodlands again. Some of the trees had leaves that had lost their green colour turning either yellow or red while other trees had already lost all their leaves or others still looked just as Marie remembered.

Lexa called the group to a halt as they reached the tree line. They had left Polis in the hours of the morning and it was way past midday now. They would halt for a break now and have a light lunch. Two younger warriors who were part of the group took the horses to a nearby stream to water them while others left to quickly hunt something. Anya helped Marie down her horse and showed the girl again how to start a fire. Lexa joined both of them after Gustus and Ryder were sent to do a quick query of the area.

Marie looked around the trees in awe as a few more leaves fell to the ground. She watched as a leave slowly fell from a tree above them catching the red leave before it reached the ground. The girl inspected the leave in her hands with interested eyes never having seen the effect of the changing season herself. “They look really pretty” Marie said twirling the leave between her fingertips with a smile on her face. Lexa nodded she could still remember watching the leaves fall for hours as a child this time of the year had been her favourite as a child.

The warriors who had gone out to hunt soon returned back with their game and they had been quite successful. Marie watched on with disgust clear on her face as they hung the rabbits they had found on a low branch of a tree letting the bodies drain from blood and already skinning the small rodents.

A squeal of pure horror left her mouth as she watched and the muscles of one of the animals contracted still. She turned to Anya with widened eyes “They are still alive!” her voice an octave higher than normal. Anya snorted at the girl clearly trying to contain her laughter at the absurd idea. “No, Marie” Lexa said in a soft tone “They are decapitated, so they are definitely dead, but the muscles keep contracting for some time after death”. The girl’s eyes returned to the dead animals and promptly another muscle contracted visibly making the girl shudder “This looks sooo disgusting…” Lexa smiled at the girl remembering that she too once found the sight unnerving a long time ago.

After the lunch the warriors quickly assembled everything again. Marie had waited with the horses gently petting Lexa’s horse that obviously recognized her and seemed pleased by the attention.

“You will ride with me for now” Lexa proclaimed as she joined Marie at the horses. The girl looked confused “Why? I was doing fine” Lexa raised a doubtful brow at the girl but before she could say something Anya spoke up having followed the commander “Your horse only followed the others. The woods are harder to navigate and you would fall off surely”. Marie looked slightly sulky but Anya completely ignored the girl’s reaction and simply boosted her onto Lexa’s horse in front of the commander.

Marie had to begrudgingly admit that sharing a horse made it easier to look around and as the ground became uneven under the horses hooves Lexa helped keeping her upright on the horse or she would truly have fallen down being unaccustomed to follow the movement of the horses back under herself.

The woods were slower to travel through but they reached TonDC just as dusk fell around them. There was barely enough light left to really see the condition of the village.

The inhabitants of TonDC were obviously happy to welcome their commander back into the village. Indra stood waiting for them as they left the tree line.

The damage made by the missile had not been completely restored yet Indra reported just as Lexa dismounted in front of her shortly hoisting Marie from the horse as well. The chief of TonDC told the commander that some of the structures that had been left from the old world had now completely collapsed and were beyond repair. Enough wooden structures had already been erected to house all citizens before winter came, there would not be enough for every single family but if they shared they would bear up the cold season. The dark skinned warrior was deeply thankful when Lexa had warriors present her with the supplies she had had packed in Polis for TonDC.

Indra had offered the commander her own little house for her stay in TonDC but Lexa politely declined and the warriors had already begun to erect a few tents on free spaces around the village. Marie recognized Octavia trailing behind Indra and she waved at Lincoln when she saw the man walking through the village.

“You have contact with Skykru?” Lexa asked Indra as she led her through the village. Some of the buildings still looked more transitional than anything else but it was comforting to the commander to know that it was enough for the village to last through winter.

Indra nodded “Kane has left me a radio” the unfamiliarity with the word was obvious in the way Indra’s lips formed the syllables. Lexa nodded ordering Indra to contact them in the morning to make arrangements for a meeting.

Anya led Marie to the tent they would be sharing with Lexa which had already been erected. Marie was completely exhausted from the long hours of the journey and her legs felt funny from being on the horse for so long. Anya practically had to help the girl undress as she seemed to be ready to fall asleep on her feet. The general gently pushed the girl to lie down to sleep as she went back to look if Lexa may require anything. But the commander was also ready to turn in for the night.

“They have made good progress” Anya commented as they entered the tent together. Lexa’s eyes immediately found Marie’s small form rolled together under a bunch of furs only her blond hair peeking out. The night was fortunately quiet and Marie slept through the night exhausted as she was and feeling both Lexa and Anya near her.

In the morning the citizens of TonDC had already made a huge breakfast for the commander and her whole party. Marie’s legs felt sore and she was happy to hear that they would be staying in TonDC for the day probably not riding anywhere. Her relief was short-lived when Anya told her that they would start her training again.

Lexa and she had decided it would be imperative to first build the girl’s stamina. So after they had a quick breakfast Anya ushered the girl away from the village speeding up her tempo to a quick jog. The general had to adjust her speed to a light jog when Marie started slipping on the damp leaves on the ground. Marie was sweating profusely and had trouble keeping up with the woman although she had noticed that Anya had already slowed somewhat she kept falling back.

“Anya” Marie called out when she had fallen back so far that she could not even see the general any more. The girl came to a stop her breath heaving and doubled over pressing her hands to her knees trying to regain some breath. Suddenly she heard a loud howl and whirled around to the direction of the sound. It came from the opposite way of where Anya had disappeared. After a moment of contemplation Marie heard another howl softer this time and it sounded as if the animal was in pain following her instincts she followed the sound.

It took her a few moments to locate the origin of the howls and when she did she found a sort of a trap and a wolf was caught in it. The wolf looked massive but his breathing was rattled and Marie could see the glinting of metal peeking out under his fur that was already coated in blood.

As Marie watched unsure if she should approach the obviously dying animal the wolf made his last breath. Marie felt her shoulders drop immediately and had already wanted to turn away from the cadaver when she caught movements in the leaves around the body out of the corner of her eye.

Marie cautiously stepped closer and her heart beat painfully in her chest as she recognized what was moving there. A small wolf obviously the cub of the dead animal was nuzzling against the cadaver probably trying to get its mother to move again.

The girl dropped to her knees slightly in front of the small cub and carefully outstretched her hand in its direction. The cub caught her scent instantly and it growled. But the growl did not sound threatening to Marie at all. Very slowly she let her hand get nearer to the cub until she carefully let her fingers glide through its fur. Marie could feel the small body tensing under her touch probably never having been touched by a human being but she continued to pet the frightened cub for long minutes until the small body relaxed under her administrations and turned its muzzle to her sniffing at her fingers. The small cub licked her fingers now to which Marie let out a short giggle at the feeling of its wet tongue.

The cub let itself be picked up by Marie without any resistance only sniffing at her neck in interest as she settled the small body in her arms. She suddenly heard rustling from the way she had come and turned around being faced with Anya who had a murderous look on her face. As the general noticed the small ball of fur nestled into Marie’s arms her glare softened slightly but was replaced with an impatient look as she said “You cannot keep it”. Marie gave her mentor an innocent look with her best pleading eyes “But it will die. Its mother died in the trap” to prove her words she pointed to the trap. Anya went over to the trap and freed the cadaver to bring the meat back to the village. She huffed under her breath “Wolfes are no pets, Marie” but her voice did not sound totally unyielding anymore.

In the end Anya allowed Marie to at least take the cub with her back to the village where Lexa could decide what to do with the animal. The general knew that killing the cub would not yield in much fur nor meat but the girl was correct without its mother the cub would not survive the winter it would not know how to hunt yet and they had clearly lost their pack. Anya had hoped that Lexa would reason with their charge that keeping a wolf as pet was not a feasible thing but to her silent horror the commander seemed quite taken with the idea. So Marie was allowed to keep the cub for now with the clear warning of Anya that if the wolf should ever hurt someone Marie would have to kill the animal herself. The girl nodded all too eagerly to that demand obviously sure that something like that would never happen. Marie had decided to name the little cub which was obviously female Risha and she carried the cub around the village until Anya snapped at her to finally put the animal down which was clearly capable of walking. Lexa watched on with a slight smile as the small cub which had light grey fur with a white blaze and few specks of black around his eyes now followed Marie around as if glued to the girl. To her it was obvious that the animal clearly felt some sort of bond to Marie and saw no harm in letting her keep the cub even if it obviously annoyed Anya to no end.

 

Chapter 75

Marie spent the next few hours sitting at the communal fire with Risha at her feet. The small cub was trying to catch a twig the girl was dangling in front of his muzzle. Every few minutes Marie’s soft giggles echoed from the fire as the cub made a clumsy movement missing the twig altogether.

Lexa watched from a few feet away as Marie played with her new companion while listening to Indra reporting in detail the progress they had made since the commander had left TonDC. The dark skinned chief had also already made contact with Skykru through the radio. Kane had answered and promised to have a delegation ready to meet them in a few hours. Anya stood beside both of them but her eyes also trailed back to Marie every few minutes and also her lips were pressed into a thin line her dark eyes were soft.

Marie also looked over to them from time to time and where her eyes looked with Lexa’s or Anya’s she would smile softly at them until Risha reclaimed her attention.

“She should be training right now” Anya grumbled in an accusative tone just as Indra left to instruct Octavia and what perimeter she was expected to scout with the other seconds.

Lexa did not react to Anya’s tone at all “I am sure her muscles will hurt enough as it is from riding yesterday and running with you in the morning. Let her have some fun.”

Anya turned her glare to Lexa now full force but the commander just met her gaze unyielding Marie’s soft giggles broke their staring contest. The general just rolled her eyes while Lexa kept on watching their charge play with the cub the corners of her lips pulled up in a slight smile.

Octavia shortly joined Marie at the fire after receiving her briefing from Indra now waiting for Lincoln. The older girl was clearly enamoured by the small animal but as she leaned down to pet the cub herself the small thing let out a light warning growl obviously not wanting to be touched and retreated back behind Marie’s legs.

Marie’s eyes were wide as she immediately looked over to Anya who was already walking over to the girl “Please, she does not mean this…” she addressed her mentor at once. Lexa followed Anya quickly noticing the high pitched quality of Marie’s voice.

“Have you been bitten?” Anya addressed Octavia her voice sharp and as the girl promptly shook her head she shooed her away. Marie was bending over to pet the cub again probably to calm the frightened animal and Anya snapped at her to take her hands away before the wolf really started to bite. As the woman crouched down to snatch the small animal away from their charge the growling resumed louder this time.

“Anya” Lexa calmly interjected seeing how the cub was pressing against Marie’s legs as if seeking security “Give them some more space”. Anya’s brown eyes connected with hers for a moment clearly doubting Lexa’s orders at the moment but she did ease up a little. Lexa herself carefully crouched down a few paces away from Marie and outstretched her hand palm up in the direction of the animal. After a few moments the cub seemed to relax against Marie and inched closer to the commander’s fingers sniffing them in interest and finally licking them as well all the while wagging its tail.

“I don’t have to kill her now?” Marie asked looking directly at Anya with pleading eyes already shining with tears.

Before the general got a chance to answer something Lexa interjected a question in calm tone “Why would you have to kill the cub?” Anya had not told the commander of the condition she had named to Marie for keeping the animal.

“I told her that she would have to kill the wolf herself if it ever bit someone” Anya said but she knew that she would have never forced Marie to really kill the animal.

Lexa looked at her former mentor minutely with a glare before her eyes softened and returned to Marie “No, Marie, you are still allowed to keep it. But you should go and ask the hunters if they have something for your cub”.

Marie smiled at her and told the small wolf to follow her which the animal promptly did to Lexa’s amusement. The hunters had some innards left which were usually not eaten and Marie fed the small pieces to Risha who caught them from the air as Marie threw them at her. Gustus had subtly followed the girl under Lexa’s orders to make sure that nothing happened but it seemed that the inhabitants of TonDC all remembered Marie fondly and eagerly supplied her with something to feed to the wolf cub.

As the day trudged on Gustus led Marie back to the tent she shared with the commander and Anya. Marie would accompany both of them with the meeting of Skykru. Lexa and Anya were looking at a map showing the surroundings of the land where Skykru had landed. The commander was trying to determine how much land to offer Skykru which would not be clashing with villages that already existed.

Risha followed Marie into the tent and the girl picked the cub up sitting down on the edge of the bed. She let the wolf go and it quickly settled into a nest of furs. Marie continued to gently let her fingers glide through Risha’s soft fur until the animal fell asleep rolled together tightly.

As Anya looked up from the map she saw the cub asleep on the furs and lowly growled under her breath garnering Lexa’s attention she seethed “This is all your fault”.

“Marie, your wolf will not sleep in the bed with you” Lexa addressed the girl “The ground is perfectly fine”. Marie caught the hint and carefully put the animal on the ground just in front of the bed without actually waking the cub.

Anya handed their charge a grey scarf and a pair of leather gloves and waited for her to get ready.  Lexa had already left to accept the horses from the stables. The commander’s horse neighed when it noticed Marie approaching and nudged its nose against her chest clearly wanting to be petted by the girl. Marie smiled and obediently scratched the horse softly behind its ears.

Anya had already mounted her own horse, a brown steed. She offered a gloved hand to Marie hoisting the girl up in front of her. She secured her arms around the smaller body in front of her. After the commander had also mounted her steed the small group started to move. Indra, Octavia, Ryder and Gustus also accompanied them completing their group. They moved at a fast pace urging the horses into a quick gallop through the trees and Marie was grateful for Anya’s strong arms around her. “Lean back” the general instructed lowly as she had difficulties to compensate for Marie’s stiffness. As Marie did she instantly felt more connected to the woman and watched with awed eyes as the surroundings rushed around them. The wind was bitingly cold against her face and she tugged the scarf higher obscuring some of her face from the coldness. For a short amount of time the thundering of the horses’ hooves against the forest floor were the only distinct sound around them.

When the commander suddenly gave a sign with her hand all the riders brought their horses to a sudden halt. Marie looked around them but in the impending dawn she could not make out anything besides trees around them.

Anya and Lexa dismounted in perfect synchrony their boots barely making any sound as they touched the ground and the general offered her arms to Marie to help her from the big animal. Marie opened her mouth to ask why they had stopped when an increasing growling noise made her halt. The noise got louder with every passing second but it did not sound like an animal to her ears. The others around her were obviously uneasy and she could see Gustus and Ryder gripping their swords as if preparing for an onslaught. Anya even shoved the girl slightly behind herself gripping her own weapon and shielding Marie from the possible threat. She noticed that Indra seemed the only one besides Octavia who did not react to the strange noise. Lexa seemed tenser than normal but she stood tall and proud her hands clasped behind her back waiting patiently.

Marie watched Octavia noting how much the girl seemed to have changed in only a few weeks. She wore her dark hair braided away from her face in a style Marie associated with the people from the ground. Her face seemed to have thinned somewhat but her body looked athletic now instead of famished and weak. It was obvious that she must have trained a lot in the last weeks. Something else was different about her as well but Marie had difficulties to pin down what exactly it was.

Before she had the opportunity to analyse the changes more in depth the noise increased even more before it suddenly stopped all together. A few moments later sounds of what must be people approaching filtered through the trees. After a few more moments the shapes of people became visible approaching their group. Lexa turned around to face them and waited until they had come close enough to see them.

The commander let her eyes quickly scan the newcomers and felt a flash of disappointment at not seeing Clarke’s face amongst them, although she had already known she would not be there. She nodded to Abby and Markus respectfully and waited until they answered her greeting. She did not recognize anyone else but she remembered that Clarke had briefly explained to her that they had a council of numerous people in place who shared the ruling over their people, a concept that was foreign to her.

“Commander” Markus addressed her respectfully with a tentative smile on his face “We were quite surprised that you wanted to meet”.

Lexa merely inclined her head “Indra had told me that you are facing difficulties to prepare for the cold season”.

Abby seemed to bristle at the comment but she wisely held her tongue for now. Her eyes kept darting to Octavia and Marie who still stood slightly behind Anya. When the general caught up with that she shielded the girl even more with her body. It was painfully obvious that the other woman still was not satisfied with Marie staying with them and Octavia now being trained under Indra.

“I called for this meeting to speak about a more permanent treaty between the coalition and Skykru” Lexa continued completely disregarding Abby’s reaction “As a show of good will the coalition offers you supplies to see you through winter”.

Apart from Abby the Skykru representatives looked impressed but the blonde woman had her eyes narrowed suspiciously and before Markus could stop her she demanded to know “What do you gain from helping us?”

Lexa clenched her jaw forcefully grinding her teeth together irritated at being questioned like that. After a tense moment of silence she said her voice sharp and void of any emotion “You and your people will not survive winter without aid”. The Skykru representatives all seemed to bristle at her brutal bluntness only Markus had his eyes downcast and it was obvious he was probably the only one to have understood the situation their people were in now. “I am sure our healers can learn a lot from you in exchange” Lexa added after another pause. She knew that her coalition was fragile at best and binding Skykru to all of them would ease some tensions that were bound to rise in the future. A small selfish part of her wanted to help Skykru solely in the hopes that it would help Clarke to forgive her were they to ever meet again. But logically it was either a permanent treaty with Skykru or rise to the clans calling to attack Skykru and extinguish them all together. Another more pressing matter was that Skykru could potentially ally with Nia. Lexa would be naïve not to consider the ice queen searching for allies to overthrow her. Skykru rallied together with Azgeda would put the whole coalition at risk. While Skykru did not have the numbers Azgeda surely did and together with Skykru’s weaponry they would pose a strong enemy, other clans could potentially rally with them as well shattering the coalition once and for all. Skykru were superior regarding healing techniques and they still had technology that could help all the clans to prosper, Lexa would just have to make all the other clans see that as well.

Unsurprisingly Markus took over again from Abby and quickly thanked the commander for her generous offer. All of them knew that Lexa did not have any obligation to help them. She could have easily done nothing and watch them starve and freeze to death once winter hit full force.

Lexa merely waved the man’s thanks off saying that the supplies would be delivered on the following day. She had previously spoken with Indra that a few warriors from TonDC were willing to teach some of the Skykru how to hunt and efficiently gather in the woods. The chief from TonDC had reported that Skykru did hunt but they were careless and shot down young animals with their guns destroying every valuable plant in their way and scaring the pray away with their loud weapons. Even Abby looked impressed with that offer now and all of them agreed immediately.

Markus invited the commander as a thankful gesture to a small feast they would hold in Arkadia in honour of the commander. Lexa agreed although slightly reluctant. Markus seemed genuine in his words but she knew that a huge part of Skykru would feel nothing but resentment for her for leaving them at the Mountain. That she had sent some of her warriors back would not be enough to atone for the betrayal in the first place.

They watched the Skykru delegation leave in silence after a few more moments. “And who will have the unquestionable honour of having to teach those idiots?” Anya inquired a snarl to her voice.

“It sounds to me suspiciously as if you volunteer to do that” Lexa deadpanned with a raised brow and a slight tease in her tone. Anya closed her mouth with an audible click and remained silent. Lexa smirked at her former mentor and remounted her horse prompting the others to also get back on the horses. Anya hoisted Marie up on her horse before getting up behind the girl. The ride back was quick as well to which Marie was grateful as her thighs hurt pretty much already.

Anya had to steady her when she got down from the horse as Marie’s legs felt completely useless. The girl smiled up at Anya with a blush on her cheeks.

“Come” Lexa said to both of them leading them to the tent they shared. Anya growled under her breath as she saw that the wolf cub had made herself at home in their furs during their absence.

“Why do you desire to rally Skykru behind you?” Anya asked as Marie sat down on the furs next to the cub gently letting her fingers glide through its soft fur.

Lexa clenched her teeth subtly rolling her eyes. She should have known Anya would know her too well. After some tense moments of silence she huffed “Skykru could ally with Azgeda instead”.

The general looked at her former second inquiringly not buying that as the sole reason for a second “And the real reason?”

Lexa crossed her arms over her chest glaring at the older woman with fierce eyes.

“You are not really thinking to appease a certain blonde Skygirl?” Anya asked. Lexa startled slightly and could not quite blanket the blush starting to creep up her neck.

Gustus interrupted them announcing a villager wanting to bring in dinner for them. But Lexa’s reaction had been enough answer to Anya’s question anyway.

Dinner was a relatively quiet affair. Lexa seemed completely lost in her own thoughts and Anya watched with narrowed eyes how their charge snuck little pieces of the roasted meat to the wolf cub patiently waiting. The girl obviously thought she was inconspicuous in her sneaking but after watching the girl feed more than half of her portion to the cub Anya finally reprimanded the girl harshly telling her that the cub would be banned from their tent if she kept that up. Marie looked abashed and searched Lexa’s face for backup but the commander only subtly shook her head mutely for once agreeing with her general.

Risha was obviously displeased with the change in pattern and after Marie had taken a few bites without offering some to the animal the cub nudged her upper leg with its paw trying to catch her fingers and licking at them in the search of food. Marie looked guiltily at Anya when she noticed the woman glaring at the wolf cub.

After they had finished their food Risha suddenly just left the tent and Marie instantly shot up from the furs to follow the small wolf. Anya held her back “The wolf probably just needs to relive itself. If it had wanted to leave your side, it would have while we were gone” silently the general had hoped for exactly that.

“But won’t the hunters kill it?” Marie asked gnawing at her lip in obvious worry.

Anya shook her head “All of TonDC probably already heard that you brought back a wolf cub and even if not none of our hunters would kill such a young animal” as Marie cocked her head a question clear on her face the general elaborated “The wolf is still a cub, we do not pray on young animals. They do not provide much meat or fur and killing the young would make the number of pray smaller in the upcoming years”.

Marie nodded with a look of understanding as that certainly made sense. She would not have thought about it that way but she recognized the logic behind that.

When it was time to rest for the night Risha still had not returned and Marie was reluctant to sleep wanting to go out and search for the small wolf. Both Lexa and Anya denied her making it clear that the wolf was still a wild animal and if it wanted to return to her it certainly would. Lexa felt slightly bad for the girl when she noticed a sheen of unshed tears in her grey eyes when Anya ended the discussion in a sharp tone immediately sending the girl to her furs.

Lexa and Anya joined the girl a few hours later planning on how to proceed with helping Skykru to prepare for winter. The commander had decided against letting Anya stay with them for a prolonged time. Even Indra had told her that bounty hunters from Azgeda had been seen trespassing in their woods in their search for Wanheda. Instead Anya would leave from Arkadia to look for Wanheda herself proclaiming to follow Lexa’s order to investigate how serious the bandit problem on their border really was. They had not yet reached a decision as to whether Marie would accompany Anya or stay with Lexa to return to Polis after a few days with Skykru.

When Lexa slipped under her furs next to Marie she could see in the near darkness of their tent that the girl was still wide awake drawn with worry. The girl instantly scooted closer to her snuggling up to Lexa’s body in a silent search of comfort. Lexa obliged her mutely and only tightened her arms around her smaller body waiting for the girl’s breathing to even out.

Sometime later the wolf cub truly did return to their tent on almost silent paws. But both Lexa and Anya were awoken by the small animal effortless jump to join them in the bed. The cub instantly rolled itself into a ball of fur pressed against Marie’s legs. Lexa had thought Anya would probably shove the animal down from the bed instantly but for some reason the general only huffed once and turned her back to the ball of fur. Lexa smirked mutely, Marie was really turning both of them softer.

 

Chapter 76

Marie was jostled awake by Anya shaking her shoulder. She blinked her eyes blearily until her sight cleared and was confused to see that it was still dark outside and a quick glance to her side told her that the commander was already up.

“We will leave shortly” Anya announced and pointed to the table “Eat quickly or you will have to wait until we reach Skykru”. The woman waited for a second until Marie shoved the furs from her body. A smile brightened up her face when she noticed Risha wagging her tail at her in greeting. When Marie started petting the wolf instead of getting up Anya hurried her to get started “Eat or you will go hungry!”

The serious glint in Anya’s eyes told Marie that the woman was not at all joking so she entangled her legs from the furs and went over to the table. Anya waited another moment until Marie had started to eat before she turned and swept out of the tent without another word.

Marie watched her retreat with a furrowed brow unsure of why the woman seemed to be in such a bad mood. Risha had followed her from the bed and stood on her hind legs putting her paws onto Marie’s thighs clearly begging for some of her breakfast. Marie glanced at the entrance of the tent but then thought better of it “Sorry, Risha, but I will get you something later” she did not have the intention to anger Anya further.

The girl had just finished dressing in the warmer clothes together with her light armour which she noted she could dress now without any help at all when the tent’s flap opened and Lexa and Anya strode into the tent together. Both of them looked visibly tense and Marie looked between them in obvious confusion. 

A messenger had arrived in the middle of the night calling for Lexa’s immediate attention. The message was sent by Titus and was of utmost importance. Unrest had begun to grow between the Desert and the Rock Line Clan for an unknown reason. Lexa feared that both clans could have already allied with Azgeda in secret which could only mean that Nia had found what she had been searching for namely Wanheda. The commander had sent the messenger back with a fresh and rested horse to relay to Titus that she would return to Polis in the next days. She could not cancel the meeting with Skykru completely as their alliance would already be tense without her suddenly declining their invitation. After a heated discussion between the two of them with who Marie would be going Lexa had simply decided that Marie would accompany Anya. She knew it would be extremely dangerous to send her so close or even into Azgeda territory but she still hoped that Nia would have already done something more drastic if she really had found Clarke. Anya had argued for Marie to stay as close to Lexa as possible in case Nia had already send out assassins but for the same reason namely to keep Anya alive if necessary did Lexa decide against such.

“Are we leaving already?” Marie asked trying to break the tension somehow her voice sounding small even to her own ears.

Lexa looked at the girl with a sigh “You and Anya leave now”.

Marie cocked her head to the side “I thought we would travel to Arkadia?”

The commander shook her head “I will travel to Skykru later.”

When Marie opened her mouth to ask more Anya interrupted her “Come” her voice was commanding and Marie complied with order immediately. She looked down to Risha for a moment but Lexa said “I will keep watch of your wolf for you. It is not save for you to take her with you”.

Worry bubbled in Marie’s chest at the seriousness in Lexa’s green eyes and she nodded cautiously feeling as if this might be a goodbye for a rather long time. Following a sudden need she quickly hugged Lexa for a moment before hurrying behind Anya who was waiting at the tent flaps already tapping her feet in clear impatience.

Anya led the girl to a brown horse already saddled with the few thing they would need and lifted her into the saddle effortlessly before mounting behind the girl. Lexa stood at the entrance of her tent nodding to Anya when the woman urged the horse into a quick trot immediately.

Marie clenched her thighs together with a startled squeak as the horse started to move so quickly without any warning. She could practically feel the tension rolling off of Anya.

She waited a few minutes until Anya had to slow the horse down as they moved through dense underwood before she spoke “Anya, what happened?”

The woman noticed how uncertain the girl sounded and she took a few deep breath to calm her own nerves before she answered “It seems war is brewing already”.

Marie took in a sharp breath but nodded with a faraway expression on her face. After a few moments of silence she spoke again “Are we in danger?”

Anya huffed at the innocent question “Lexa is the commander, I am the lead of her army and you are her second. We are always in danger”.

Marie shivered slightly as the realisation sunk into her and Anya tightened her arms around her smaller body trying to offer at least some silent comfort. The general knew that no pretty words would ever change anything about the facts of their lives.

“And what are we going to do?” Marie inquired after a long time of silence between them the horse’s hooves against the ground the only sound.

“Search for Wanheda” Anya commented and Marie noted an undertone in the woman’s voice she could not quite place. She knew that people in Polis had started to call Clarke by that name but she had no idea why everyone seemed to think that the older girl possessed some sort of mythical power over death. There had been nothing magical about the inhabitants of the Mountain who had not had a bone marrow transplantation to die of radiation poison after a few minutes of exposure to the outside air and all those who had already been cured had been killed by the few warriors who had returned to the Mountain with Anya.

Marie remembered that Lexa had explained to her that a part of their culture was the belief that to kill someone meant absorbing some of the power of the one you had killed. A shiver ran up her spine at the realization that she in fact did possess a power that would probably be very desirable. Another thought crossed her mind and without thinking she spoke “Why has Lexa not killed me yet?”

Anya seemed to do a double take at the seemingly out of the blue question her brows drawn together in confusion “Why would she even consider?”

“Lexa said queen Nia would search for Clarke to gain her power through killing her” Marie said and after a heavy pause she added “And I do have a kind of power…” The girl’s words trailed off and Anya sighed audibly above her.

The general let go of the horse’s reigns with one hand snaking the now free arm around Marie’s frame pulling her against her chest firmly and her voice was unwavering as she said “The kind of power you have would never be transferred to someone who killed you, Marie. But you are correct, not everyone will accept that as the truth and try to kill you for your power. That is part of the reason why Lexa and I were insisting that you must keep your talent hidden at all costs, because otherwise they may very well cost you your life.”

Marie nodded with a lump in her throat and let herself relax against Anya’s lean body feeling the echo of her strong heartbeat against her back. She let her thoughts wander as the surroundings rushed around them when Anya could urge the horse into a gallop in more even terrain. She barely registered how quickly the time passed and would have probably fallen from the horse as Anya pulled the animal to a sudden stop if not for the general’s arms keeping her securely in place.

Anya let her eyes wander around carefully. They had made good progress and had reached their first destination. A trading post near the border to Azgeda. Lexa and she had hypothesised that Clarke could have never survived out in the wild without any kind of help for so long. The blonde would have needed to visit some kind of trading post and all of those Lexa’s scouts had already visited had all claimed to never have seen Wanheda. When she could not detect any possible threat the general dismounted the horse in one fluid motion and helped Marie down as well. Anya bound the horse’s reigns to a wooden post in front of the trading post and turned to Marie who followed her mutely “Do not speak in there”. The girl nodded obediently a little unsure of why her mentor commander that she remained quiet but knowing better already than to question Anya.

She followed Anya to the door to the trading post and without knocking the woman just pushed the door open entering without a beat of hesitation but Marie noticed how one of Anya’s hands was curled around a dagger at her hip. Marie cautiously peered behind Anya’s back into the dimly lit room.

A woman was standing behind a counter of sorts and the walls were mostly lined with shelves broadcasting what was sold and a few tables stood around the huge room also laden with various wares. The woman had dark blonde hair and brown eyes. Marie had noticed that most of Trikru seemed to have brown eyes. The woman’s hair also showed typical braids and her features previously cautious morphed into a warm welcome when she recognized the general.

“Anya” the woman greeted with a respectful smile on her face “It was a long time ago”

The general nodded and stepped closer “Niylah” she responded and her hand let go of the dagger falling to her side. Anya remembered the blonde girl from the few training sessions they had shared in their youth. But while Niylah had quickly chosen not to follow the warrior’s path and returned to her parent to help with the trading post Anya had remained and excelled in her training quickly moving up the ranks.

“What brings you here?” Niylah asked in a kind voice grabbing a bottle under the table. She poured some of the content into three cups having noticed the girl slightly hidden behind Anya’s body.

It was easy to spot the moment Niylah recognized the girl behind Anya. Her eyes flashed with recognition and her hand faltered for a second missing one of the cups and splashing some of the liquid onto the table surface.

“You probably can guess already” Anya drawled in a purposefully bored tone. The other woman had never completely mastered the skill to mask her reactions and was thus still relatively easy to read.

“Wanheda” Niylah said gripping the bottle in her hand with a little bit of too much force. Anya instantly knew that Niylah obviously knew Clarke personally. Internally she let out a sigh of relief at having found a real trace to the blonde girl.

Anya nodded accepting one of the mugs Niylah mutely shoved into her direction. She took a sip feeling the warming effect of the strong alcohol spread instantly. Marie carefully accepted the other mug and took a large gulp obviously not expecting alcohol. The girl started coughing immediately spewing some of the alcohol back out in the process. Her face pulled into a grimace at the biting taste.

The ghost of a smile played around Niylah’s lips as she quickly fetched a mug of water for the girl instead “You are not used to alcohol, huh?” she checked while taking the half emptied mug back and replacing it with the water. Marie eyed the water suspiciously for a second before carefully taking a sip and then gulping down the whole mug at identifying it for the water it was.

“So the rumours are true about you and the commander taking one of the Sky children as your second” Niylah addressed Anya who nodded curtly. Any of their children at Marie’s age would all have been used to the taste of even strong alcohol.

Niylah seemed to think something through and took a large gulp of her own cup before she finally spoke “Wanheda was here last night”.

Anya silently cursed. If the blonde girl had been here only the night before it could be weeks before she returned.

“She was wounded” Niylah continued “And a group of bounty hunters were here searching for her. I sent them on a path into Azgeda territory. But I do not know for sure if they believed me. Wanheda waited here slightly to give them time to clear out but she left before first light”.

“How many?” Anya questioned her brows furrowed in thought.

“Three” Niylah clarified “All from Azgeda”.

“And the wounds?” Anya asked. Wounds meant possible infection without proper care and hygiene which could prove challenging out in the woods.

“Claw marks from a panther she killed” Niylah answered. She had cleaned the wounds for the girl the previous night but she had not dressed them properly or put any healing salve into them.

Anya was impressed to hear that Clarke had somehow managed to kill a panther. More experienced hunters had already died trying to prove their prowess against a panther and failed miserably. Maybe they had underestimated Clarke’s abilities after all.

“Do you have any idea in which direction she went?” Anya questioned and Niylah shook her head in the negative and she also did not know when the girl might return to the trading post.

“Have you seen bandits around here?” Anya asked finally.

Niylah nodded “A group of them come near our trading post from time to time but they never tried to get in”. Anya furrowed her brow confused with that answer and Niylah’s expression clearly mirrored her confusion. Bandits would usually scavenge at all opportunities and a small trading post would not have any defences against multiple attackers.

“Sent a message to TonDC” Anya directed “The commander is there. She will send someone to help”. The woman looked relieved and nodded “I will sent one of the neighbours young immediately”. Her father regularly had to leave the trading post to deliver something to the next bigger village or trade there on the market leaving her alone. The general felt slightly guilty for using the other woman in such a way. But Lexa had known that the trading post would be her first destination and Niylah asking for help had been a sign they settled on the signal that Anya had found a trace of Clarke.

“Thank you, Niylah” Anya spoke honesty in her voice and set down the empty mug on the table guiding Marie back outside. The woman looked down on the muddy ground in front of the trading post easily spotting different tracks.

“What do the tracks tell you?” she asked Marie directing her attention on the ground as well. Anya watched as Marie scrunched her brow in thought before she answered “The men have gone north”. The general nodded at that, the deepest tracks all led away from the door in the direction north into the treeline. A smaller set of tracks led into the treeline on their right which Marie identified a moment later.

Anya collected their horse helping Marie up on its back before mounting behind her and leading the horse in the direction of the smaller tracks. It was obvious Marie’s eyes were not yet practices enough on what to look for in the underwood and the girl had completely lost the track some time ago. Anya still could spot the occasional trampled down plan or a broken twig someone had stepped on. She followed the track for a rather long time but she doubted they got anywhere near the blonde Sky girl. She could not detect any sound of movements in their vicinity aside from the usual animals.

Camp for the night was rather uncomfortable in Marie’s opinion. Anya had just packed two furs. One for them to lay down on and another to cover both of them. The girl was grateful to be able to snuggle up to Anya as the air had gotten absolutely chilling as the sun disappeared behind the horizon. Marie silently wondered where Lexa might be at the moment. Maybe the commander was still in Arkadia or already on her way back to Polis. Anya did only dose lightly aware of the dangers that lurked in the dark in the woods. She had kept a small fire ablaze to scare away any pray but she knew that Clarke would also be able to see the flames if she was even that near to them.

Luckily for Marie she was so exhausted from travelling the whole day from sunrise long until sun down that she slept completely without nightmares. But she felt stiff and still tired when Anya rose before the sun showed itself again. The girl yawned and accepted a piece of dried meat from Anya rubbing at her eyes tiredly. When she accepted a water skin back from her charge she noted that it needed refilling soon and the horse also required more water.

Anya guided them into the direction of a nearby stream and as the horse drank his fill she refilled the water skin and splashed some water into her face. Crouching down at the bank Anya suddenly noted prints in the muddy ground and cursed under her breath.

Marie looked up from having petted the horse while it drank to what had obviously angered her mentor. “She is obviously way more skilled than we gave her credit for” Anya mumbled waiting impatiently for the horse to finish. Another pair of tracks had lead in the opposite direction obviously the Sky girl had tried to make a false trail and it would have worked had Anya had actively sought out the stream.

Marie furrowed her brow not understand what the woman’s words meant. “Look at the tracks” Anya snapped at the girl a little harshly. Marie jumped slightly at the tone but inspected the tracks immediately following their path down the small stream exactly in the way they had come from. Realization dawned on her “She just went back?”

Anya nodded her lips pressed together into a thin line. Maybe it would work better just waiting Clarke out somewhere that she was bound to cross. The general knew that you could spent weeks to follow someone around without ever catching up.

When the horse finally drunk its fill Anya lead it to follow the tracks direction. She noted that the tracks seemed to get irregularly as if the one who had made them had started to stumble. Which could hint to a possible infection making her steps uncertain. She was just glad at not seeing any other fresh tracks around so it seemed that Clarke had somehow managed to evade all bounty hunters looking for her.

Anya knew that she would find Clarke sometime sooner or later.

 

Chapter 77

They followed the tracks in the muddy tracks in the stream’s bank in silence for what Marie seemed like a long time.

The general felt a slight flash of acknowledgment for the blonde Skykru girl. Clarke’s tracks had become even unsteadier the longer they followed them. It was obvious that the girl seemed to trudge on simply relying on sheer stubbornness and her strength must be dwindling fast.

Anya had lead the horse in a relatively slow pace following the tracks but cursing under her breath she recognized that for the error it had been. She had feared their approaching noises would only urge Clarke to move faster and simply hoped the girl would have to fall victim to her exhaustion and collapse somewhere. But the girl’s tracks in the muddy ground had stopped suddenly and the general noticed other tracks coming across the stream’s bank from the treeline and returning back into the woods.

The meaning of these tracks was instantly clear to her and an icy realisation settled into her mind. Someone else had already found Wanheda and obviously taken the wounded Sky leader with them. Judging from the number of tracks it would have been three people and immediately Niylah’s mentioning of the three bounty hunters from Azgeda that had searched for Wanheda in her trading post flashed back up in her mind.

Marie had also caught up with the fact that the tracks they had been following seemed to have vanished “Where could she have gone?” the girl wondered out loud clearly not drawing the same conclusion the other tracks mixed with Clarke’s on the ground.

“The question is rather where she was taken” Anya drawled already guiding the horse in the direction the other tracks pointed into the woods. She knew that these woods were near to the border of Azgeda and she would need to be careful of eventual scouts posted from Azgeda to keep out strangers. Although the coalition laws actually forbade such a thing and allowed all clans safe travels through the different clans it was an open secret that Azgeda still tended to strike strangers down and ask later what they had wanted.

She had no means to tell how long ago the bounty hunters had encountered Clarke or how fast they would be travelling with her. All that was obvious was that they travelled on foot obviously not in the possession of a horse and that would need to be enough to catch up with them. The commander and Anya had spoken about where Nia would be probably at the moment and with her obviously just waiting to challenge Lexa for her leadership it was probable that the ice queen would already be near the border which in conclusion decreased the time they had to catch up with the bounty hunters before they could deliver Clarke to the ice queen. It would be near impossible to rescue the blonde Skykru leader once the ice queen had her in her possession.

Anya ordered Marie to hold on as tightly as she could and urged the horse into a gallop. She tried to keep track of their surroundings being wary of running into Azgeda soldiers but the time limit urged her to move faster than reason justified. She knew how important it was for Lexa that Clarke did not fall into the hands of Nia and not just to make sure Wanheda’s power did not go to Nia but on a more personal level as well as much as the commander had tried to deny the fact Anya knew her former second too well to be fooled by her denial.

As the tracks led to an impromptu campsite Anya slowed the horse suddenly pulling hard at the reigns. Marie had difficulties keeping herself on the horse as Anya already dismounted quickly feeling the remnants of a small fire and to her satisfaction finding it still slightly warm which only could mean that they were catching up. What worried her was the sight of fresh blood on the grass next to the extinguished fire. The blood had not dried yet backing the conclusion that the small group was only slightly ahead of them now.

The bounty hunters had moved through the woods as careless as Skykru did leaving tracks which were easy to follow. Anya got back up on the horse behind Marie and urged the horse in the direction the bounty hunters had left. She kept the horse purposefully at a much slower pace now but still quicker than someone on foot would be possible to move. If she caused too much noise the bounty mounters would hear them approach and facing multiple opponents having the moment of surprise on her side was rather important.

It did not take them long now until Anya was able to detect the sounds of careless movements ahead of them. Soundlessly she dismounted the horse quickly tying its reign to a tree moving on foot now would decrease their noise even more she just hoped Marie would be quite enough but the bounty hunters moved rather careless as if unafraid someone might chase after them.

She lifted the girl from the horse after she had silently decided that leaving Marie alone with the horse could only bring more complications. Anya noted with satisfaction how careful Marie seemed to be in following her wordlessly understanding that avoiding any kind of noise was of utmost importance at the moment.

The general regretted not having given the girl a bow it would have been helpful if Marie could have an active role in the fight that would surely start once they did catch the bounty hunters as they were unlikely to give up Wanheda on their own free will. Fortunately for Anya they technically were still on Trikru land and killing the bounty hunters could not be twisted by Nia into going into her territory to kill soldiers of her own.

Anya urged Marie too move as fast as she dared without being too loud at it. The noises from the group travelling ahead of them got louder with every passing moment and the general already had daggers in her hand ready to pounce on the first sight.

When they came close enough to the bounty hunters to hear them talking between each other Anya called them fools in her head. The men were discussing rather loudly on what they were planning to do with the promised bounty which was extremely high. The general doubted that any of them would even survive delivering Clarke to the ice queen she knew what kind of thanks would await them and they were complete fools to even think otherwise. Anya urged Marie to move slightly faster still guiding the girl around the small group to get a real glimpse of what she would be facing.

She pushed her charge down into a bush crouching down next to her obscuring them from careless eyes and the bounty hunters seemed so absorbed in their planning that they barely spared their surroundings any glance.

Anya observed the group carefully. Two of the bounty hunters walked closely together loudly talking with each other. The third one lagged slightly behind pulling someone behind him. The person being dragged behind stumbled with every step which slowed them down considerably. Anya knew how stubborn the Sky girl could be when she wanted remembering their way through the woods after they had escaped the Mountain together but her faltering steps did not look staged but rather as if her legs would give out any moment.

The general counted herself lucky when Clarke stumbled more strongly and the man who had dragged her behind had not anticipated that and the girl fell to the ground face first which was obscured by a sack having been pulled over her head. Anya momentarily wondered why the hair peeking out under the sack was red and not blonde but chalked that off to an attempt at obscuring her identity.

The man who had dragged her behind called the others to a stop and as they turned around Anya saw her chance. She quickly signalled Marie to simply stay put opting to keep her out of the line of fighting all together. The general silently threw her first dagger forcefully and watched with satisfaction as it embedded itself into the back of one of the bounty hunters. She was already in the process of throwing the next one when the man who stood next to her turned and deflected her dagger with a quickly drawn sword.

The man with dagger in his back had fallen to the ground and remained lying face down in the grass but the second man now also charged at Anya with his own sword drawn.

The bounty hunters were more skilled in combat than Anya had previously anticipated and she needed a few minutes to kill the first one being on the receiving end of his sword producing a large gash on her upper arm. She clenched her teeth barely registering the pain of the cut and charged at the last remaining bounty hunter with an aggressive snarl putting all her force behind a series of blows. The man had clearly underestimated her abilities and left his side unprotected from her blows creating an easy opening to slice her own sword into the man’s body mercilessly.

She panted from the exhaustion of the fight as she pulled her bloodied sword from the dead bounty hunter. Marie cautiously came out of her hiding spot her own dagger clenched into a white-knuckled fist and her eyes wide with horror as she flitted over the dead men’s body to Anya’s bloodied blade and lastly to her strongly bleeding wound on her arm.

Anya only nodded to the girl in reassurance that everything was under control now. The gash on her upper arm would not kill her but it worried her that Clarke had not tried to flee in the chaos of the skirmish. The girl was laying in the grass and only the movements of her breathing indicated that she was still alive at all.

“Do you remember the way back to the horse?” Anya turned to Marie and when the girl nodded immediately she sent her to collect the animal at once. She watched shortly as the girl hurried to comply with her order vanishing between the trees quickly.

She let her brown eyes scan the surrounding trees quickly hoping that no Azgeda warriors or other bounty hunters had been near enough to hear the fight but when she did not detect any more movements around her the general quickly crouched down next to Clarke pulling the sack obscuring the girl’s face away immediately.

Anya was relived to see that the girl was truly Clarke recognizing her face immediately. A bloody gash on her forehead showed that the girl had not come without a fight and her blue eyes were opened but completely unfocused.

Anya put a hand to her forehead and pulled it away with a frown on her face immediately. The other young woman was burning up and obviously delirious with fever. At the touch her blue eyes regained focus for a moment her face contorted in panic before her eyes flashed with recognition and she uttered “Anya…” her voice sounded hoarse and weak and her eyes rolled back into her head losing consciousness completely.

Mixed with the recognition in Clarke’s eyes Anya had momentarily detected relieve, surprise and lastly anger. Anya knew that Lexa would await a rude awakening if she thought the blonde Sky leader would be pleased to see her again. Quickly the general gathered the unconscious younger woman into her arms feeling with a slight twinge of worry that the girl must have lost a lot of weight over the time she had spent in the wilderness on her own.

The general hurried to move towards Marie and the horse Clarke needed medical attention immediately. She knew how deadly a fever from an infected wound could be if not treated early enough. Her brow furrowed when she noticed that the poor horse would need to carry all of their weight together now and it would be a tight fit but it would have to do. Leaving Marie to walk back alone was not an option neither was letting her ride with Clarke on her own. She doubted her charge would even find the way back to Niylah’s trading post on her own without getting lost in the process.

Marie was leading the brown horse by its reign walking quickly but she had not dared to try to mount the horse without any kind of aid too afraid to fall and injure herself. Anya did not comment on the fact that the girl walked in front of the horse only accepted the reigns from Marie and lifted Clarke up on the horse. Having an idea Anya lightened the horse of all the things she had packed letting them fall to the ground carelessly. Niylah would be able to provide them with anything they might need later on anyway. Marie watched her mentor empty the saddlebags with a frown but she remained silent.

Cautiously she approached Clarke and touched her hands trying to call onto her power with a frown she let her hand sink again as nothing had happened. “Do not fret now” Anya simply commented having caught up with what the girl had tried to do but they still had no idea how exactly the girl’s talent really worked or if there were some kind of conditions for her to be able to heal someone to begin with.

The general mounted behind Clarke shoving the unconscious as far on the front of the saddle as possible and helped Marie with one free arm awkwardly into the saddle behind herself. The girl immediately snaked her arms around Anya’s midriff to hold on tight and Anya quickly urged the horse back around from where they had come into a gallop.

Watching Anya’s bleeding arm Marie mutely tried to activate her power again and was both relived and confused as it worked almost instantly the gash knitting itself back together in just a few seconds. Anya hissed at the burning pain of the healing wound but remained quiet for now.

The general was occupied with guiding the horse through the underwood as it got denser opting for the more direct and shorter way towards the trading post right through the woods and not following the stream.

She internally debated about whether it would make sense to cool the girl down in the stream but she had nothing with her to treat any kind of wounds and she knew the trading post would surely be stocked with some kind of healing supplies. So Anya only urged the horse to move faster still nearly bringing the animal to the limits of his physical abilities.

Marie had to hold on tightly on to Anya or she would have fallen from the horse as its movements increased in strength the more Anya urged it on to move faster. The girl had no idea how far away their destination was but she already guessed that Anya wanted to return to the trading post. She just hoped Clarke would hold on. With a pout Marie carefully not to let go of Anya completely reached out with one hand to touch Clarke again and tried with all her might to force her talent to work again.

Her face was drawn in concentration and she did not even feel it when blood started to pour from her nose. She had her teeth clenched tightly with force as liquid also started to pour from her eyes and ears. Anya having her back turned to the girl was oblivious to what Marie was trying to do but as the girl’s arms suddenly started to slack around her body the general was startled. She felt the girl’s head fall forwards onto her back all of a sudden and Anya tightened a hand around Marie’s slack arms keeping them locked around herself not daring to stop the horse now as she knew they were close already to the trading post.

Anya let the horse pull to a stop almost violently in front of the trading post silently praying that Niylah was alone in the building. Her arrival had obviously been rather loud as the door to the trading post was opened from the inside and Niylah stood in the entrance a weapon drawn to defend herself against attackers.

Her kind face flashed with worry as she recognized Anya and noted Clarke’s unconscious body perched in front of the general. The woman put away her weapon instantly and hurried to Anya to help her. As Anya let go of Marie’s arms to hand over Clarke to Niylah the girl immediately started to slip from the horse. Fortunately Niylah reacted quickly enough and caught the young girl before she could crash onto the ground.

Anya’s eyes widened as she noticed the blood smeared across her charges face and the girl was deathly pale.

“Bleeding disease?” Niylah inquired with a high pitched quality to her voice. A disease similar to these symptoms had been used to infect the delinquents from Skykru and was often enough deadly for those that caught it but Anya quickly shook her head. The girl had not shown any kind of symptoms only a few hours ago and normally the disease was accompanied with foreshadowing exhaustion and a strong headache sometimes with visions before the bleeding started.

Anya dismounted keeping Clarke’s body pressed to her own feeling the burning of her feverish skin even through her own clothes. Niylah carried Marie directly through the large room of the trading post into the backroom where two beds stood. Her father was away for the next three days so she was alone for now.

Anya laid Clarke’s body onto the other bed and went over to Marie feeling her forehead and finding the skin cold and clammy to the touch. As fever was also a sign of the bleeding disease the symptoms still did not fit and she had no idea what was wrong with the girl but the bleeding seemed to have stopped. With worry she noted that the girl seemed to have bled from her eyes, nose, and mouth and even from her ears turning some of her blond hair red in the process.

Niylah was already removing the clothing from Clarke’s upper body and turned her onto her stomach revealing angry looking deep claw marks on her upper back. The claw marks were an angry red colour and puss was already seeping from them.

Anya watched unsure of what exactly to do as Niylah sprang into action thankfully versed at least a little in the art of healing. Their trading post was too far from the next village to always call for a healer so she had early on been taught on how to use and produce various salves, teas and identify healing herbs.

The blonde woman forced a tea down Clarke’s throat and then started with cleaning the wounds with another streaming tea. Clarke regained consciousness in the middle of the obviously painful process and her pained screams echoed from the walls of the small room. Anya instantly moved to help Niylah by pushing down on Clarke efficiently immobilizing the girl. Fortunately for the Sky girl she lost consciousness again and Niylah finished her treatment with smearing a reddish thick paste over the now slightly bleeding wounds. She covered Clarke’s body with thick furs keeping the wounds exposed and then turned to the younger girl also still unconscious.

“I have no idea what is wrong with her” Niylah said after taking a look at Marie. She had opted with giving the girl a normal tea simply to keep her body hydrated and also covered her with furs to warm her back up.

The door to the trading post was opened and Niylah went to cater to the customer relieved to notice it was someone from the next village who came here regularly and did not pose a threat.

Anya had sat down on the edge of Marie’s bed and carefully cleaned the blood from her face that had already started to dry. She felt at a complete loss. She had successfully located Clarke and prevented her from being brought to Nia but her wounds were deeply infected and she had no idea if the girl would be able to survive them and she had not even recognized something was wrong with her charge to begin with. Seeing her lying under a bunch of furs her skin almost white and her chest only rising with shallow breath made Anya feel weaker than she cared to admit. The general let her fingers glide over the tear in her coat where Marie had healed the bleeding gash and a frightening thought planted itself inside her mind: What if Marie was lying there now because she had healed her?

 

 

Chapter 78

The hours passed painfully slowly and Anya spent the whole night at Marie’s bedside. What worried her the most was the girl’s utmost stillness whereas Clarke had already begun twitching from time to time or her eyelids fluttered Marie did not react to anything.

If Anya were not able to see the subtle raise and fall of the girl’s chest she would have been convinced she had already slipped away.

Niylah regularly administered more tea to Clarke and applied some more of the reddish paste to her open wounds. After a long night the trader was satisfied to feel the blonde’s fever decreasing slightly.

Anya felt her blood run cold as the light of the new day made her notice how more of Marie’s blonde hair had been turned red by blood and a small trickle of blood was still leaking from her ears.

She had no idea on how to proceed now. It was obvious that Marie needed medical care that none of their own healers would be able to provide. Lexa had originally wanted her to deliver Clarke to TonDC or Polis depending on where she would be when Clarke was found but it was still possible that Lexa might still be in the vicinity of Arkadia and she dearly hoped Abby would be able to figure out on how to help Marie.

The decision was taken from her when the door to the trading post was opened again only shortly later and five warriors who had been sent by Lexa from TonDC to guard the trading post arrived. Anya had never been more relived to see other warriors. The general recognized all of them as residents of TonDC and all nodded respectfully to her.

“Has the commander already left to Polis?” Anya questioned immediately urgency in her voice. She had no idea what was really wrong with the girl but she had the nagging feeling that this was something that would not be cured by simple rest.

“No, as far as I know the commander did not want to leave for another day” the oldest of the warriors supplied.

Anya let out a relived breath if she hurried they could arrive at Arkadia before Lexa left. She wondered silently why Lexa was even still in Arkadia if the situation with the clans was as precarious as Titus’ message had relayed but she would not question her luck now. 

She looked between the five warriors trying to remember who was supposed to be the best and fastest rider out of them. The general settled on one she did remember being on a scouting mission with and knowing he was a proficient enough rider.

“Come with me” she commander in a sharp tone. The warrior looked indecisive for a moment “Heda’s orders were to …”

Anya hissed at the warrior to shut up “Believe me, the commander will want you to ride back with me right now!” She led the warrior into the backroom and instructed him to carry Wanheda outside and get in a saddle with her right now.

The general bent down and swept Marie’s slack body into her own arms checking that the girl was in fact still breathing. She had no idea if it was just her imagination but she had the impression that girl’s breathing was already getting weaker.

On her way out she uttered a quick thanks to Niylah and followed the warrior carrying Clarke who was still unconscious as well. Her own horse had been tented to by Niylah during the night and was well enough rested; she only hoped that the warrior’s horse was also up to the pace she intended to travel with.

“Keep up!” she barked at the younger warrior already urging her horse into a quick gallop away from the trading post. Fortunately the man thought better than to actually argue with her and did not question where she was leading them but rather only followed silently.

It was raining slightly and the wind had an icy quality to it making the fast pace of their travels rather uncomfortable but Anya kept on rushing the horse through the woods taking every shortcut she knew of.

Pressing the girl’s body against her chest it was impossible for Anya to assess if the girl actually continued to breath or not but there was no stopping now. The general noticed that Clarke seemed to start to wake in the arms of the other warrior. She hoped for all of their sakes that the blonde Sky leader would remain delirious for the rest of their way that would surely made the journey easier for all of them.

The general made them ride the whole day through without even stopping once and still the sun was already starting to set when Arkadia loomed at the horizon. She dearly hoped Lexa would still be there and that the idiots standing guard would not shoot at her again.

It seemed that Anya’s luck still had some reserves left for the day and the gate to Arkadia already stood open when they approached and Lexa’s small team were ready to leave.

The commander halted their leave once she recognized Anya together in the company with another rushing towards Arkadia.

She felt relieve course through her at the sight of Clarke but she noted with a frown that the blonde leader was not conscious.

The general dismounted her horse quickly keeping Marie’s slack body pressed to hers protectively. “She needs medical care immediately” she addressed Lexa urgently.

Kane and Abby had stood watching the commander’s group leave and the woman had already hurried over to Clarke checking her daughter over worriedly.

“What happened?” Lexa questioned following Anya who started to move into the direction of the interior of Arkadia where she thought their healers would probably work.

A man stood at the entrance of the Ark that had been introduced to Lexa through the day as a doctor working alongside with Abby. She forgot his name but the man immediately guided them through the metal complex to a room that a metallic sterile stench to it. Anya laid the girl down on the table and explained to the man in quick words that she had no idea what had actually happened.

“We rode quickly but she was fine when we mounted up” Anya said her voice wavering slightly with barely concealed nerves “She lost consciousness sometime through the ride but I just saw that she had blood on her face when we dismounted”

The man’s face was drawn into a grimace “Has she only bled from her ears?”

Anya shook her head “No, it looked as if she had bled from her eyes, nose, mouth and ears”.

The man took Marie vital signs and connected her to some kind of device before he bolted out of the room. Anya watched him retreat with a helpless expression while Lexa tried to keep calm asking again what had happened.

The general relayed how they had went to Niylah and found tracks of Clarke and that the girl had been taken by bounty hunters. She also mentioned that Marie had healed a gash on her arm before she passed out during the ride. Lexa’s brows furrowed looking down at the pale girl with obvious worry. It nagged at her mind that her duty demanded she returned to Polis immediately but she would at least wait for the doctor’s verdict.

To both of them the minutes ticked by slowly until the man returned helping Abby hoist Clarke’s body onto another of the beds in the medical bay. The woman immediately pushed a cannula into her daughter’s arm and connected a bag filled with liquid to it.

They came over to Marie’s bed both their expressions grime as the man briefed Abby and what Anya had told him “Bleedings from all upper orifices which stopped and bleeding from the ears started again a few hours ago”.

Indra stood at the entrance to the medical bay and cleared her throat loudly garnering the attention from Lexa while Abby had started to undress the girl. The chief of TonDC wanted to know when they were to leave as most of the warriors had remained in their saddles in case the commander would return after a few moments.

Abby addressed Anya still sitting next to Marie’s bed when Lexa had went over to Indra “Thank you for bringing my daughter back” the woman’s voice was honest. Anya only nodded not bothering to tell the doctor that she certainly had not searched for Clarke for her but rather followed the commander’s order.

The man had retrieved a series of instruments laying them on a tray next to the bed and Abby thanked him “Thank you Jackson. Look over Clarke for me, please”. He nodded and went over to the other bed to examine Clarke more closely but both of them knew that Clarke would recover while the fate of the younger girl was unclear.

After undressing Marie Abby started with testing the girl’s reflexes. Anya watched her like a hawk feeling awkwardly inadequate in this setting unable to help with anything. Lexa returned back to them standing rigidly next to Anya the tension clearly visible in the clench of her jaw. She had informed Indra that they would depart at an unknown later time as she was unwilling to leave just like that Titus be damned. The commander by no means had any kind of healing training but she knew enough that such a bleeding without a severe blow to the head was uncommon.

They waited in silence as Abby ran her tests repeating some of them just to be sure. When the woman finally laid down the last of the instruments her face was grim and her voice laden with sadness “She is dead”.

The single three words felt like a sword driven through her body and Anya stared down at the girl with widened eyes with disbelieve. Lexa seemed to fare similar to Anya “But she is still breathing”.

Abby nodded with a heavy sigh “But her body does not show any reflexes anymore. The damage is within her brain. It is probably an erupted vessel but I cannot identify where it is. There is nothing I can do for her”. The doctor watched both of the other woman process her words and in that moment neither of them looked like the stoic war hardened warriors she had come to know but just like two women who had just lost someone they cared deeply for connected in their grief.

Anya clenched her hands into tight fists as her eyes misted over with tears while her mind struggled to accept what the doctor had just said.

Jackson had come over back to them and he was gnawing at his lips clearly uncertain before he suggested “The medical facilities in Mount Weather have a CT scanner”.

“No!” Anya thundered looking at the man with rage in her eyes, she would not sit back and watch the girl being transported into the place where the Mountain had bled her people dry for generations.

The man swallowed once surprised by the outburst “I did not mean to bring Marie there but rather get the machine here. Transporting her any further would increase the likelihood of the vessel to rapture completely before we could operate.”

Abby looked doubtful and her words were careful “There is no guaranty that the procedure works, Jackson. And no way of telling how much lasting damage is already there”.

The man nodded his expression drawn “But it is the only thing that might save her now. Without any procedure her body will just cease functioning in the next days”.

Lexa felt Abby’s eyes on her. They had just today discussed heatedly about the Mountain. The council of Arkadia was of the opinion that the Mountain held many valuable things and wanted to collect them and her response had been a steadfast denial. “Collect this machine” she simply ordered “If you can convince me of the advances of the Mountain’s equipment I will give you the permission to gather all of it”.

The woman nodded leaving immediately to organize the transport. Jackson remained and also connected Marie to one of their strange bags containing fluid telling them that it contained nutrients her body would still need.

Lexa put a hand on Anya’s shoulder if to comfort the general or to ground herself she had no idea. She shortly glanced over to the other only occupied bed in the medical bay containing Clarke’s body. She was relieved to know that the blonde woman was now save back with her own people.

“What about Polis?” Anya asked after long moments of silence her voice sounded strained and tired. Lexa immediately shook her head already having decided that she would not leave to the capitol. As Wanheda was safely in Arkadia now Nia could impossibly claim to have gained her powers.

The general remained sitting at Marie’s bedside staring at the girl with a forlorn expression. She could not shake the feeling of that this was a repetition of losing Tris and she could already picture herself cutting one of the girl’s braids from her hair as a keepsake.

The commander quickly left the medical bay heading in the direction of the entrance to the Ark and promptly ran into Markus Kane. Judging from the man’s expression he had already been told of why she was still here and he wanted something from her “Commander, I am sorry to hear of Marie”.

She waved his condolence away with her hand as to her the girl was not yet dead holding on to a tiny sliver of hope “What is it you require?” she asked instead.

“A group of us will leave in a rover in the next minutes to gather the CT machine. But we wanted to take other…” the man said.

Lexa interrupted him “Take whatever you want except for weapons but make it quick”. Markus nodded with a thankful expression “There are rooms available if you want…”

She interrupted him again “No, thank you for the offer. My people will prefer to erect tents outside”. After the man nodded again she waited a moment and when it was clear that he did not want to say anything else she swept past him with quick strides.

The group of warriors who were supposed to leave with her to Polis was still in their saddle when she stepped outside of the Ark. “We will not leave tonight” she loudly proclaimed “Erect tents to stay. We may need to stay for several days” confusion was evident on some of their faces but none of them dared to question her. Gustus immediately dismounted and approached her with a cautious expression “Marie’s situation is this precarious?” the whole group of warriors had recognized the body pressed to Anya’s chest earlier as Marie but they had thought her to have a normal injury.

Lexa had to steady her voice before she could answer “She is on the brink of death”. 

Gustus nodded with a grim expression staying silent knowing that no matter what words he said they would not change the situation at hand. “I will organize the camp” he simply offered and Lexa accepted with a grateful expression holding his kind gaze for a moment before she turned back and headed back inside the Ark towards the medical bay.

Anya looked ready to collapse when Lexa returned to the sterile room. Her expression was drawn with exhaustion and her body was slumped slightly towards the bed holding one of Marie’s limp hands in her own.

“You need to rest, Anya” she addressed her former mentor her voice purposefully soft. She already knew the woman would be unwilling to leave Marie’s bedside even for a few moments.

As predicted Anya immediately shook her head her expression firm but the woman failed to mask the utter exhaustion from her brown eyes.

Lexa sighed “At least rest in one of the beds here. I will stay with her” when Anya still looked unconvinced ready to object the commander added “You won’t help her if you drop from exhaustion. Do not make me command you to rest, please”.

The woman huffed but the fight left her eyes and she nodded eying the beds around the room with clear distaste. The general chose the bed nearest to Marie. She only shrugged out of her heavy coat and boots and laid down on the thin mattress not even bothering to cover herself and closed her eyes.

Lexa took up the vacant post next to Marie’s bedside. The girl’s fingers were still slightly warmer where Anya had held them only moments ago as she enveloped them with her own hands.

“Do not give up now” she lowly addressed the girl. Jackson returned to the room to check the girl’s vital signs and Lexa startled him slightly when she asked “Can she hear what is going around her?”

The man looked doubtful before he answered “There is no clear answer to that. She might, but nothing is proven in that regard. But it certainly can’t harm to talk to her in case she does hear it might calm her”. His dark eyes were kind as he explained the situation to the commander. The man was slightly intrigued to see the woman so different from the political figure he had seen the previous day. The power was still there conveyed in her whole pose and strong eyes but she looked younger and more vulnerable as she sat next to the girl holding her hand still dressed in her whole commander regalia looking utterly displaced in the atmosphere of the medical bay.

He also checked on Clarke and was intrigued to hear the commander starting to talk lowly to the girl again and even though he could not understand the words as she had switched back to her native tongue he still felt touched by the gesture in itself.

 

 

Chapter 79

Lexa remained sitting next to Marie’s bed the whole night lowly speaking to the girl in her native tongue. She told the girl all that she would be missing about the snow, the spring and the first real summer. Marie had only thus far seen the late summer blending into autumn there was so much left for her to discover. The commander told her about the sea where the Boat People lived and that she would personally bring her there if she just held on to life.

Jackson or Abby kept in returning to the girl’s bedside in regular intervals noting down her vital signs and sometimes doing some sort of tests Lexa had no idea on what their purpose was. The commander counted it as a good sign that the girl had continued to breath and her heart had not stopped beating.

When the morning finally came the group that had driven to the Mountain returned with their rover. Lexa was intrigued by the speed of their journey knowing that to complete such a mission solely with horses would have taken at least three times as much time.

She watched on impassively as a huge contraption was carried into the medical bay where room had already been made for it previously. Raven the girl she had falsely started to punish in TonDC instead of Sierra limped around the machine a metal brace encasing one of her legs wiring the thing up. It was obvious the movements were strenuous to the girl’s body and Lexa had to mutely acknowledge the girl’s obvious strength in biting through the pain silently etched into her features. Raven had only spared the commander one slightly hateful and distrustful gaze as she entered the medical bay and she looked ready to hurl some hurtful words at the commander but something in the leader’s expression had made the words die on her tongue before they even formed.

The commander had stopped speaking to Marie once it was clear she now had lasting company in the room. The noises they had made promptly woke up Anya from her much needed rest but a few short hours of sleep were better than no sleep at all. The general stood up from the bed stretching herself and after dressing completely again stepped back up next to Lexa “No change?” The commander shook her head. “You also need to rest, Lexa” Anya reminded her former second who only sighed clearly not impressed with the reminder.

“How long until this thing works?” Anya turned around to Jackson who was approaching Marie’s bed to check on her again. The man shrugged “It should take a few hours. We need to calibrate it before we can reliably use it”.

“Then it is your turn to rest now. I can wake you when they start” Anya offered. Lexa huffed at Anya’s attempt of commanding her but she knew that the woman was right so she relented silently.

Raven watched both women talk in their native tongue and it unnerved her not to know what they were talking about she was already uneasy enough in their presence to begin with. She watched how the commander stood from the chair next to the girl’s bedside to make room for her general and discarded some of her armour. To her it seemed as if the other woman’s body shrank slightly without all the heavy armour. The commander laid down on the bed previously occupied by her general lying on her side to face Marie’s bedside so that Raven was unable to see her face.

Raven was grateful to the general for bringing Clarke back to them and Abby had told her that she was expected to make a full recovery and wake up soon. A part of her could understand why Clarke had not returned with them after the Mountain but another part of her resented her for simply walking away. She was still convinced that trusting the grounders would blow up in their faces later on and she knew that she was not alone with that opinion. But she could not deny that both women obviously cared for Marie deeply which did not really fit with the ruthless picture that had stuck in her brain. The general was now sitting next to Marie holding her hand and lowly speaking to the girl in the language Raven was unable to understand just as the commander had done when they entered the medical bay.

Abby had told her that Marie seemed to have suffered from a sudden aneurysm and that the woman was doubtful at best regarding her survival. Raven could not shake the flash of empathy for the younger girl. The doctor had also told her that with a CT machine they could take a closer look at what exactly was bothering her so much in her leg maybe even enabling them to make another operation but she did not want to bring her hopes up just yet.

Setting the machine up did really take a few hours and Raven had already started to doubt that they would ever get the thing to work again when it finally whirred back to life. She let out in involuntary whoop of triumph startling the commander awake and making the general turn in her chair her fingers already resting on a dagger beneath her coat. Raven ignored both of them as Lexa stood back up from the bed and began to redress in her armour. The mechanic mutely wondered how hard the ground really was if both of their first instincts was to reach for a weapon at a sudden noise.

Abby and Jackson returned to the medical bay promptly when Raven told them that the machine was working again. She ran a few tests on it together with them and were satisfied to see that the transport luckily did not seem to have had any impact on its calibration at all.

Monty came with Wick to the medical bay to set up an extra computer for the machine which took some more time.

Jackson was the only one who thought of supplying the commander with a spare chair when she just remained standing rigidly next to Marie’s bed. Raven mutely wondered if anyone might have thought to offer them some food when a few minutes later two grounders appeared bringing food for their commander and general. Judging that the plates contained bread and what looked like freshly roasted meat of some kind it was obvious that the grounders had already hunted for themselves instead of using food supplied from the Ark.

Lexa ordered one of them to relay a message to Titus telling the flamekeeper that her departure from Arkadia was halted for an unknown amount of time and that Wanheda had returned to her people. She purposefully left out the reason for her delay or that Anya had been the one to make Clarke return.

The man nodded and left quickly to bid her orders. The other one waited for both of them to finish their plates and took them away again without another word.

“She will make it, she is strong” Lexa said to her former mentor to reassure her and to make herself believe the words when Abby told them that the machine was successfully set up and they could start. The commander nodded for them to proceed and they watched on how Marie’s limp body was laid on a special kind of stretcher that disappeared inside of the machine with the girl. They together stood and watched how the machine did its measurements both not having a clue what it actually did. The pictures that appeared on the monitor of the computer were also foreign to them but Abby and Jackson seemed to know what they meant as they analysed them together.

Lexa could practically feel the anxiousness rolling off of Anya while they waited for the doctors’ verdict. Marie’s body was brought back out of the machine onto the bed she had previously occupied.

“Is there something you can do?” Lexa finally asked when it seemed that both doctors would keep on discussing on how to proceed endlessly.

It was clear that both of them had a different opinion on the matter. Abby seemed convinced that an invasive procedure was bound to fail and that the lasting damage to the girl’s brain was too extensive already for her to ever wake up again. Lexa felt her heart drop at the words and had to bite her tongue to contain the tears that threatened to fall unbidden from her eyes. Anya had swallowed once turned on her heels without a word and stormed out of the medical bay. Lexa was torn between following her clearly upset general and waiting for Jackson’s opinion. She had never felt so utterly helpless and defeated like in this very moment.

Jackson was obviously convinced that such a procedure might work. His words were passionate “Abby is right that there is a great risk that the procedure will not actually help her at all. But we both know that doing nothing means her absolute death. There is no harm in trying!”

Lexa nodded also she ruthlessly quenched the small sliver of hope blooming in her chest “Do what you can….” her words had a hollow quality to them even to her own ears but she was powerless to keep her stoic mask intact. “How long will it take?” was the only thing she wanted to know.

“The operation is complicated and we must run a few preliminary tests before we can start” Jackson answered before Abby had the chance to open her mouth. Lexa silently wondered why the male doctor seemed more inclined to at least try to help Marie but she would not question his motives now.

She merely nodded and turned back to Marie pressing a gentle kiss to the girl’s forehead and muttering “Stay strong, little star” before she also swept from the medical bay without another word.

Lexa knew immediately on where to look for Anya when she stepped outside of the Ark breathing in deeply to inhale the scent of the fresh air. Her predictions were true and she could already hear fighting going on from the direction of the training pit Skykru had created. Lincoln and some of the villagers of TonDC had already started to try to teach those willing from Skykru their way of fighting without relying on guns. Anya stood in the middle of the training pit her eyes wild and angry and her fists were already bloodied slightly when Lexa came nearer. A young man dressed in the guards uniform from Skykru stood at the edge of the training pit his face bloody and swayed on his feet while a young woman Lexa did not know personally was tending to him. She doubted that the man had even gotten one hit in before Anya had beaten him. Indra and Octavia were also at the training pit with Lincoln who had trained with Octavia under Indra’s supervision. The man held back another one of the Skykru guards and stood facing Anya instead. Even under normal circumstances Lincoln would not have stood much of a chance against Anya but as incensed as the woman was Lincoln was losing quickly against her staggering back after getting a few hits to his head. Octavia was visibly angry and wanted to help the man but Indra held her back with a clear shake of her head she knew that her second would not stand a chance against Anya either. They had just been lucky thus far that Anya had not taken out any weapon or the dark skinned warrior was sure that her previous opponents would already be dead now. Lexa led her red sash and shoulder pauldron fall to the ground unceremoniously having two short swords in hand she took up Lincoln’s spot facing Anya.

The woman’s brown eyes were unfocused and Lexa doubted that the general even recognized who stood opposite of her. She tightened the grip around her swords as Anya blinded by a crazed rage charged at her. Gustus who had watched Lexa leave the Ark stood on the edge of the training pit unsure if he should intervene or not when Indra stepped up to him. “Is she dead?” the dark skinned warrior asked bluntly seeing that as the only explanation for Anya’s momentarily condition. Gustus had no answer for her hoping that there was another explanation.

Their question was answered when Lexa side-stepped Anya’s raged attack hitting her with the blunt edge of one sword across the back of her knees hard making the woman stumble and fall to her knees and loudly addressed her “Anya, she is not yet dead!”

The general only growled in answer before she quickly stood and charged again “Not yet?!” her scream echoed around the open space.

The fighting seemed to last forever and even though Anya still had no weapon in hand her rage had increased her power and she had landed a few hits busting Lexa’s lips in the process. The commander was sure her clothing was hiding a few bruises that already formed beneath them but she had trained for years with Anya and one lesson had always been important as long as you could still stand you would and you would bite through the pain. She just had to hold on long enough for Anya’s anger to fade.

As she spat a mouthful of black blood on the ground Lexa started to doubt that her mentor’s anger would fade and she made her own attacks more aggressive.

“They will kill each other” Octavia said to Lincoln a slight horror making her voice waver. Lincoln shook his head although he still had never seen Anya lose control to this extent and he hoped that Octavia’s prediction did not hold to be true. The woman was known for taking out her frustration on the training pits but that had never been to this extent.

Anya was already sprouting a few superficial flesh wounds and breathing hard but still holding on to her anger with sheer force of will when Jackson hurried from the Ark. Lexa stepped back from Anya breathing hard herself and spitting out more blood. Her green eyes snapped to the doctor praying mutely that he would not be bringing the message she feared he did.

All the fight seemed to leave Anya’s body all at once and she fell to her knees suddenly weak after Jackson had said that Marie had miraculously survived the procedure. The commander re-sheathed her swords and offered Anya a hand to hoist her from the ground.

Her brown eyes took in the crowd they had gathered during her uncontrolled display and she noticed how much her body was hurting. Anya saw the blood on Lexa’s face and guilt flashed through her eyes but Lexa only mutely squeezed her hand a silent understanding passing between them as she hoisted the general up from the ground. Gustus had already collected the commander’s things from the ground and brought them back to her tent for her.

The crowd instantly parted to let them pass in the direction of the Ark. Lexa noticed how some of the Skykru seemed to go out of their way to make space for them nearly falling over each other to do so.

They had been on the training pit for a few hours and Lexa felt her muscles burning from the exhaustion and was sure that Anya wasn’t faring any better and she knew that her general had taken more blows from her than the other way around.

Anya tried to apologize to Lexa on the way to the medical bay but the commander merely waved her off telling her that she understood instead. Anya nodded grateful although she knew that such a behaviour was utterly unacceptable least of all from her.

Abby and Raven who had remained behind to observe the CT machine working properly both looked baffled when they took in the women’s appearances. Jackson who had hurried before them offered to check both of them over to make sure they had not seriously injured each other but both declined the offer immediately.

Marie was back in the bed she had occupied the night before. Her head covered in a crisp white bandage and connected to even more wires than before. Tubes were fixed to her face coming from her mouth and nose connected to some sort of machine.

Anya looked utterly bewildered her hands hovering uncertainly above Marie’s clearly afraid to hurt the child by touching her.

“You can touch her” Jackson reassured immediately sensing the woman’s need to physically feel the girl’s presence for herself. “We had to put her on a mechanical ventilation system as her breathings stopped through the procedure” the man explained and seeing the horror flashing up on both their faces he hastened to add “But her scans look rather promising”.

“So she will wake up?” Lexa clarified with a hopeful hint to her voice.

Abby huffed and Jackson looked guilty for a moment before he said “There is no guarantee she will…” his voice trailed off as the silence settled around the room save for the regular beeping sounds coming from the machines Marie was linked to nearly suffocating them in its force.

“How long…” Lexa started, stopped and seemed to gather her thoughts for a moment before she rephrased her question “How long does she have to wake up before she never will?”

Jackson looked small under her probing green eyes gaze “We do not know. The first few days normally. But there have been cases of coma patients waking up month later”.

“Month?” Anya echoed her voice sounding hollow.

“Even years” Abby added with a heavy sigh. This was exactly the reason why she would not have tried the procedure in the first place.

“So this thing is breathing for her?” Anya questioned pointing at the tubes connected to Marie’s face distaste clear in her tone.

Abby nodded “If she does not start breathing on her own in the next up to seven days the chances she will wake up are next to none existing”.

Lexa sank into the other vacant chair next to Marie’s bed “Is there anything that can be done to help her?”

Abby shook her head “She needs to be under supervision. Her muscles need to be moved regularly and apart from that it is now up to her” after a moment she added “All you can do is, be here. Speak to her, touch her, let her know you are there. It has been known to help”. Abby left out the part that they did not have the resources to keep the girl alive in a coma for longer than a few weeks at best. She dearly hoped the girl would wake up, but she was a rationalist and she knew how slim the girl’s chances were.

 

 

Thanks you all so much for leaving so many comments on the last chapters =)

They really spurn me on to write ;)

Clarke finally wakes up now xD

As I cannot answer Alyssum per PM here is your answer: I do get your point really. But I actually do not want Marie to have such a character arc at the moment. She is nine, why does she have to change into a ruthless warrior over night? Her training will increase and her personality will grow as well of course, but I don’t feel it is necessary to have her grow in such a way all of a sudden. Sure I might add some “shocking” elements that force her to grow up quicker, but not right now. I am actually quiet taken with the idea that a “simple” girl could hold her place among the grounders and actually get them to like her exactly for herself and not solely for her strength. I don’t want to say that I will keep her a weak girl that needs protection all the time, but she is still a nine year old girl and I want to keep her like that a little longer.

 

 

Chapter 80

Lexa had no idea what time of the day it actually was or how long they had been sitting next to Marie’s bedside. Anya still held Marie’s limp hand in hers letting a finger glide over her knuckles gently over and over again. Without any windows it was impossible to assess the light outside and Lexa would have longed to bring Marie to their tent but logic already told her that the machines keeping her alive would not work in their tent.

Her body and mind felt tired and numb but she was unwilling to leave the girl’s bedside. Abby or Jackson returned regularly to check on the girl or to administer something to her.

After a few hours obviously another set of guards brought more food to them. Gustus was also with them telling the commander that a messenger from Titus had already arrived back and was waiting for her in her tent.

Lexa huffed but followed the man. She knew that Anya would stay with Marie and she longed to breathe the fresh air from outside if even for a few minutes.

Gustus did not offer her any more words of condolence knowing they would not do any good. He did not understand why the Sky people seemed to have an unending need to repeat stating how sorry they were for someone who’s suffering they had not even caused.

The commander swept into her tent followed by Gustus and could not stop her steps from faltering when she spotted the wolf cub lying in their furs. Guiltily she had to admit that she had completely forgotten about the animal.

The messenger handed her a scroll of paper which she accepted and sent him from the tent to wait for her reply. She opened the scroll and quickly scanned its contents. Her eyes narrowed in annoyance. As expected Titus was angry with her delay demanding that she returned immediately to Polis. But what she could also extract from his words was that the situation with the clans was obviously stable enough now that they knew Wanheda was not in Nia’s hands.

In a haste she wrote a reply stating that she would return the latest in two weeks from now. That would hopefully give Marie enough time to wake up. She already feared what would happen if the girl was still in what the doctors had called “a coma” then.

After she handed the scroll over to the messenger with the order to not hand it to anyone but Titus personally Lexa shortly returned to the tent. The wolf cub was standing on its paws wagging its tail at her approaching form. It immediately licked at her fingers when she outstretched them to pet the small animal. To her it felt as if the wolf’s eyes were searching for Marie and when they did not spot the girl the wagging of its tail ceased. Lexa sighed apologetically at the wolf before she just picked her up intent on at least bringing the animal to Marie.

When she returned to the medical bay Anya was in the exact same position she had been in already when she left. Even the plate of food looked completely untouched. Lexa pursed her lips at the general and she put the wolf down at the foot of Marie’s bed.

Anya immediately narrowed her eyes at the animal already climbing up Marie’s body. The animal let out a pitiful whining noise when Marie did not start petting her as she clearly wanted to be. Risha pressed her nose under Marie’s free hand lying down at her side with the limp hand on her body.

Lexa looked unimpressed by Anya’s narrowed eyes and firmly shoved the untouched plate to Anya “Eat and then you need to rest” there no room for a discussion in her firm tone and Anya relented. The general quickly ate the food from the plate and stood from the chair stretching her back in what looked like a painful motion from having been sat hunched over for hours without a stop. She eyed the thin mattress of the bed with distaste.

“The tents are already erected” Lexa supplied “You could do with fresh air and a change of clothing”. It went unsaid that she would remain behind by Marie’s side by both of them but the general nodded and after one last long glance at Marie she left the medical bay.

Lexa took up the vacant chair nearest to Marie’s bed and took her small soft hand into hers feeling the absence of callouses on the girl’s fingers. She idly wondered how long ago her own hands been free of callouses and she could not remember at all.

Remembering that Abby had said that talking to Marie might actually be beneficial Lexa started to tell Marie episodes of her early training. She had not even recognized that she had switched back into Trigedasleng at all.

Groaning caught her attention some time later Risha’s ears had also perked up at the sound. But it did not seem to come from Marie but rather from the other bed in the medical bay. Lexa let go of Marie’s hand and stood to go over to Clarke’s bed. The blonde young woman had started to toss and turn probably caught in a nightmare.

Cautiously Lexa outstretched her hand softly touching Clarke’s warm hand and calling her name in order to rouse her. The reaction was instant and Clarke’s blue eyes snapped open. She jerked her hand away from the unexpected touch and promptly sat up in the bed her eyes widened and clearly agitated as she struggled to process where she was.

“Clarke, it is ok” Lexa tried to sooth her distress “You are safe”. She felt relieve flowing through her at the sight of the blonde leader conscious again.

Her blue eyes instantly snapped to Lexa’s face and the commander was taken aback by the flood of emotion she found in them. Fright, relief, wonder and confusion flashed through them lastly settling on an obviously encompassing rage.

Clarke seemed speechless for a moment before she uttered through clenched teeth “Why am I here?” her tone was demanding.

Lexa sighed “Bounty hunters were bringing you to queen Nia. Anya had searched for you, rescued you and brought you here. You were injured”.

“I did not ask for your help” Clarke nearly spat the words at the commander. But Lexa noticed a flash of panic in the blue eyes when she looked to the door.

Lexa searched for words for a moment before she settled on the truth “You did not need to ask for my help”

Clarke looked taken aback for a moment clenching her jaw stiffly “You can leave again!”

Lexa did not miss the emphasize on the last word but she did not flinch at the words although she could not help the slight pain they caused her nevertheless. She took a deep breath keeping her face purposefully impassive “I am sorry that I had to leave your people at the Mountain, Clarke”.

Clarke huffed crossing her arms over her chest “I said you can leave!”

Lexa shook her head “No, I am not here for you. But I will alert your mother that you have woken”. The commander noticed the surprised confusion in the blue eyes but she turned around before Clarke could say anything else. She knew that she would have left Arkadia to go back to Polis if Marie was not in that bed already at least a day ago. She could understand Clarke’s anger had even anticipated to be faced with it. But still right now where she already felt wounded and weak on a different level being faced with the probable outcome that Marie would not wake she did not have the strength left to expose herself to Clarke like that.

She found the chancellor in her living quarters together with Markus Kane only letting them know that Clarke had woken before she turned back and headed back to the medical bay. She felt Clarke glaring daggers at her from her position in the bed from the other side of the room but Lexa ignored her completely opting to just sit down next to Marie’s bed and holding her hand again. She resumed speaking softly to the girl in her native tongue just as Abby entered the medical bay breathing heavy at having rushed her.

The woman hurried over to her daughter enveloping the girl in a strong hug relieved tears in her eyes as she did so. Lexa politely kept her back to the intimate scene only focusing on Marie instead. She was distracted from her narration as Jackson came back to start moving Marie’s muscles. Risha had her ears flattened to her body and actually growled at the stranger in warning as he made to touch her human.

Lexa chuckled softly under breath and simply took the wolf from the bed by the fur on her neck placing the cub on her lap and carding her fingers through her furs to sooth her.

Jackson looked startled “I did not know you kept wolves as pets”.

Lexa shook her head “We do not. Marie found the cub a few days ago. Its mother had died in a hunters trap and apparently it has chosen to stay with her”.

“Does something like that happen often?” the man wondered.

Lexa shook her head again “Not that I am aware of. The cub would have starved without its mother so Marie begged to be able to keep it.”

She watched curiously how the man started rotating the girl’s arms in different directions kneading the girl’s limps afterwards and did the same to her legs. He finished with stretching her limps in different positions.

“How often does this have to be repeated?” Lexa asked as she watched him. On the other side of the room Abby was examining the claw marks on Clarke’s back telling her that she obviously had had severe blood poisoning and would not be leaving the bed for a few more days just to be on the save side.

“As often as possible” Jackson answered.

“Can I do that as well?” Lexa instantly questioned.

The man nodded “Sure. It is not that hard or complex. I will show you the next time. It should not be done more than a few times a day”. He tested a few of her reflexes and called out to Abby when he detected some reflexes in the girl’s legs.

Lexa looked startled and had no idea what that meant “Is that a good or a bad thing?”

“A good thing” Abby reassured the commander with a kind smile “It may mean that the brain damage was much less severe than I had thought”.

Lexa noticed that the woman still kept her words vague but she would believe them for now. Everything that would get her hopes up was highly appreciated right now.

Both doctors left the medical bay soon after. Abby had tried talking to Clarke but after it was clear that she had absolutely no intention of letting her daughter leave the room the young woman demanded to be left alone to rest.

Lexa had noticed from the corner of her eye that Clarke had turned her back to her and with a sigh she refocused her attention solely on Marie. She would give Clarke as much space as the room they were trapped in together made possible.

She had resumed talking softly to Marie in her native tongue and completely forgotten the other leader was even in the room caught back in old memories.

Clarke had tried ignoring the presence of Lexa but she failed completely. Hearing the soft murmur of her voice was both comfort and torture to her. Her mother had explained what seemed to have happened to Marie and that she doubted the girl would make a recovery but it seemed Lexa and Anya were both insistent to wait her out. The anger coursing through her veins at seeing the origin of her turmoil sitting there could not be quenched by her and after what felt like hours of listening to her voice, which was softer than she ever remembered, Clarke finally snapped.

“Shut the fuck up!” she hurled the words loudly at the commander and watched with satisfaction that she had obviously startled the other woman.

Lexa was blinking at Clarke in what seemed like shock for a moment before a mask of calmness settled over her features. “Your mother said talking to her might help” Lexa justified her continued talking through clenched teeth.

“I doubt hearing your voice has ever helped anyone” Clarke snapped back. She watched the flash of hurt wash over Lexa’s face before she could mask it with satisfaction. But she had thought Lexa would raise to her bait and hurl hurtful words back at her and she was astonished when the commander’s shoulders seemed to drop and she simply turned her back to Clarke. The blonde could swear she had seen a sheen of tears in the commander’s green eyes. Her angry mind supplied that the commander was probably incapable of crying to begin with. Crying for someone required to have a heart and feelings and Clarke had convinced herself that Lexa lacked both.

Lexa meanwhile actually did fight back tears of her own. Clarke had always had a way of pushing her buttons right from the first moment they had met. Her anger against the commander had obviously driven her to use that ability to cause her the most possible pain. She could not help wondering if Clarke’s words carried some truth in them, had she ever helped anyone? Her coalition was on the verge of crumbling after all.

Her dark thoughts were halted when Anya entered the medical bay. The woman looked more rested and had changed into clean clothes. Her brown eyes at first probed Marie’s face feeling a little down that the girl was still unconscious. Anya knew that Lexa would have had her notified immediately if she had woken but she still had hoped.

The general took in the downtrodden expression on Lexa’s face with a frown. “You will stay with here?” Lexa asked Anya not sparing even a glance at Clarke her voice purposefully void of any traces of emotion. Anya nodded her consent and was slightly confused as Lexa immediately stood from the chair and left the medical bay without another word.

Her eyes landed on Clarke’s bed and she noticed how her blue eyes were fixed on her anger clearly visible in them “So you woke up” Anya drawled in a bored tone.

Clarke narrowed her eyes at the older woman “You had not right to bring me here!” she seethed.

Anya rolled her eyes at the girl’s theatrics “No?” she asked with a raised brow.

“No” Clarke instantly shot back “I had not wanted to return”.

Anya snorted “I am deeply sorry to have taken this decision from you then, Sky girl” she mocked the blonde purposefully. Seeing the mood the girl was in explained why Lexa had looked so shaken, the general could almost picture their first conversation without the need to hear the words hurled at Lexa from the angry blonde woman. “Should I have left you in the hands of the bounty hunters then?” she asked still mocking her.

Clarke narrowed her eyes into angry slits “I did not need your help!”

Anya snorted at that “Oh absolutely not. You would be dead without me, right now” there was no accusation in her tone as she was just stating facts.

“I would not” Clarke insisted sounding more like a pouting child than anything else.

“No?” Anya inquired raising a brow at the girl. She left Risha on Marie’s bed and went over to Clarke. She knew Lexa would tiptoe around the other woman for the foreseeable future too noble and guilty to say to the blonde’s face what she obviously needed to hear. Anya would not make the mistake she had made with Marie leading to the girl nearly accidentally killing Lexa in the process.

The general towered over Clarke’s form as she said her voice deathly calm “Let me get a few things straight with you, Sky girl” she snarled “You are alive solely because Lexa has ordered me to search for you” when Clarke opened her mouth clearly intend on injecting something Anya barked “Silence!” satisfied to see Clarke’s mouth closing with a snap. The younger woman had obviously not expected Anya to be so blunt and forceful with her.

“You are here because you were in the hands of bounty hunters in the process of bringing you to queen Nia” Anya informed the blonde her eyes glittering dangerously daring the girl to interrupt her again before she had said her piece “My people believe that by killing someone you gain his powers. So you would have either been killed by Nia now or succumbed to your infected wounds, dying alone somewhere in the woods. Which would not have been such a loss, if you ask for my personal opinion.”

Clarke clenched her teeth angrily at the words.

“I killed the bounty hunters bringing you to Niylah who looked after your wounds. But because Marie suddenly dropped unconscious bleeding all over her face without any reason you are now here” Anya continued her voice still sharp “My original orders were for you to be brought to TonDC or Polis, where you would have been protected as you were clearly intent on not returning to your people”.

The blonde woman looked perplexed by the general’s last statement but the anger was still present in her blue eyes.

“If you want to be angry for being here” Anya said “by no means. Be as angry as you want but vent somewhere else!”

“And it was no trouble at all to save your sorry ass” Anya finished mockingly turning her back to the younger woman and striding back to Marie’s bedside leaving Clarke speechless. The general knew that the conversation was not finished and Clarke would probably kick and scream later on once she had processed all that she had said to her.

 

 

Chapter 9: Chapter 81 - 90

Chapter Text

Chapter 81

Anya was right in her prediction and sometime later Clarke addressed her again but her tone surprised the woman slightly “I am sorry for my outburst”.

The general turned in her chair still holding onto Marie’s hand her brow raised at the younger woman in a silent question.

Clarke huffed crossing the arms back over her chest. Anya snorted “Still an idiot child than”. She had seen Marie do the exact same thing but the girl was much younger and acted more mature most of the times than Clarke did at this moment.

Silence settled over them once more and a long time passed Anya was convinced the blonde woman would remain silent. But she had been wrong.

“She left me” Clarke uttered barely loud enough for Anya to catch the words laden with all the hurt the blonde must be feeling.

Anya sighed silently musing why it seemed that she would have to be the one to talk some sense into the younger woman. The general noted how Clarke had formulated the stated solely to her own person and not necessarily leaving all of Skykru behind which told her that the rational leader in Clarke could understand Lexa’s decision to some extent, it was her heart that obviously could not.

Anya silently contemplated on how to proceed. She knew it would be better for Clarke and Lexa to have this conversation but the anger still bubbling under the surface in Clarke was a clear sign that the blonde woman was not ready for such a talk.

“She did not only leave you” Anya stated as she let go of Marie’s hand again to return to Clarke’s bed as she had a feeling that this conversation may take some time.

Clarke looked doubtful for a moment before her face turned even darker “Yeah, she left all of my people” she spat the words the anger bubbling closer to the surface.

Anya clenched her teeth keeping hard to her patience “Yes, she did and I know that as a leader you know that she had no other choice. But I did not mean that, I meant Marie”

“The plan would have worked if she just had stayed” Clarke insisted. Even though Clarke did not utter that she would then not have had to kill all the Mountain Men Anya heard the words nonetheless knowing that the blonde woman was laden with the guilt of her choice.

“It might have, or it might not have” Anya calmly stated “We will never know. But we know that all of my people in the Mountain would have been shot on the spot. And we do not know if it was true or not but the Mountain Man brokering the deal threatened to drop a missile on Polis. As the commander Lexa never could not have taken the deal”.

This part of information was clearly news to Clarke judging by the surprise on her face but it was obvious that this would not change the way she felt at all.

So Anya tried to appeal to where the problem was, namely to Clarke’s feelings “Lexa tried to change the deal. Demanding that all of Skykru who were outside of the Mountain would be free to leave. But they were not having it, demanding Marie as well and the immediate retreat of the army. The Mountain Man showed us an object showing our people forced on their knees and shot to death with every minute that passed. You have no idea how it felt to watch Marie being dragged away screaming to us to help her”

Anya could not quiet stop her voice from wavering as she would never forget the girl’s screams at that moment.

“As the commander she could not possibly return to the Mountain, neither for Marie nor for you” Anya stated bluntly “But she gave those who wanted to the chance to do so. Do not mistake her taking the Mountain’s deal for a personal decision”

“Mmh” Clarke grunted noncommittally.

“Do not even think to attempt to physically harm any of them” Anya threatened narrowing her eyes at the younger woman clearly not trusting that her words had had any effect thus far.

Clarke looked affronted that Anya would even suggest that she might think to use Marie to harm Lexa. “How do you harm someone the most?” Anya asked rhetorically and giving the answer before Clarke opened her mouth “By hurting those they care the most about”.

“Think about what I said” Anya finished and got up again to return to Marie. Clarke’s hand catching her wrist stopped her retreat.

“Thank you” Clarke uttered her voice soft and let go of the other’s woman wrist immediately, Anya merely inclined her head in acceptance and sat down next to Marie again.

Sometime later Jackson returned with Lexa in tow. He had notified the commander that he wanted to repeat the procedure on working Marie’s muscles and wanted to show her how to do it.

Jackson smiled kindly at Clarke while Lexa solely looked at Marie and Anya. The commander had also changed clothing not donning any armour instead she wore snug dark leather trousers with dark heavy boots reaching just under her knees and a formfitting simple dark shirt. Clarke only spotted a holster holding one dagger strapped to one of her thighs and no other weapon was visible on her person.

Anya nodded to her in a silent greeting noting that Lexa seemed to have rested some as well. She took guiltily in the bruise she could see blooming darkly on the left side of her jaw and the black crust of blood on her former seconds lip.

The general watched on with a slight smile pulling on her lips as the small wolf growled again at Jackson in warning as the man reached out to touch Marie. “I mean her no harm” the man tried to reason with the animal but the growling persisted and only increased in volume the nearer his hand got to Marie.

Lexa intervened by plugging the cub from Marie’ body and setting it down on the ground. The cub looked up at her with protesting eyes whining lowly at her scratching at her leg with one of its paws for attention, but was ignored by the commander.

Jackson started slowly showing Lexa on what needed to be done and how to do it. Anya watched as well so that she would be able to help as well.

The man had done some research while he had been in his quarters “What does usually have the strongest effects on her?”

Both women looked confused by the question and Lexa asked “You mean of what she is afraid?”

Jackson shook his head “No, I mean the opposite. What works to sooth her?”

Clarke was silently impressed to hear Lexa answer “Letting her listen to your heartbeat”. The man nodded with a contemplative expression “Cuddling with her might be helpful then”.

At both of their warry expressions he explained “That is called a positive stimulus. Formerly coma patients would be exposed to for example the music they loved to listen to, or sounds of the ocean or the voices of loved ones. But it is not just acoustic sensation but also smell and touch”.

Jackson showed Lexa how to work specific muscle groups and wanted her to repeat the movements. The commander was obviously hesitant fearing to hurt the girl somehow in the process. Jackson quickly reassured her that she definitely would not cause her any pain but that the movements would contradict the girl’s muscles seep away as quickly.

Lexa was extremely cautious and gentle with her touch and Jackson had to tell her a few times to apply more pressure but all in all she learned quickly on what to do. The commander left the medical bay again afterwards leaving Anya again with Clarke in the room.

“Lexa is surprisingly gentle with her” Clarke commented only a few moments after the commander had left. Anya looked at the younger woman inquiringly, did she really think they were only capable of violence and war? “Do you ever think before opening your mouth?” Anya wondered mockingly.

Clarke had the decency to blush slightly under the woman’s scrutinizing gaze realizing how her words must have sounded.

 “Why did you bring me here if your orders were to bring me to TonDC or Polis?” Clarke questioned after a moment of silence.

“Marie needed medical attention none of our healers could have provided and I knew Lexa was still here” Anya answered simply not even turning away from Marie.

Clarke frowned “Why was Lexa here?” her confusion was evident in her voice.

Anya sighed before she turned around facing the younger woman “The commander offered your people assistance to last through the winter”.

“She did?” Clarke echoed clearly perplexed.

Anya nodded mutely waiting for Clarke to say something else as she sensed that the woman still wanted to question her on something else.

“Why would the ice queen need my power?” Clarke asked after another moment of silence.

“To challenge Lexa” Anya explained “The clans would side with Nia immediately if they thought she had Wanheda’s power”. The general noticed Clarke’s slight flinch at the name now irreversibly associated with her person. Lexa had tried stopping the rumour from spreading but her attempts had been futile.

Clarke snorted her eyes glinting angry again “So what is she waiting for?”

Anya furrowed her brow “Waiting to do what exactly?”

“Kill me?” Clarke supplied sarcastically.

The general shook her head at the younger woman surprised by so much idiocy “The commander would not have gone to such length to save you if she had wanted you dead”

“Oh I am sure she has gone out of her way…” Clarke commented her voice dripping with sarcasm.

Anya’s patience snapped again “Why do you think no one in Trikru territory harmed you? The commander had ordered that no harm was fall upon you. Sending out all available scouts to look for you. What do you think would happen when the clans rally with Azgeda?”

The general did not leave Clarke with enough time to find an answer to that question before she snapped “War would break out. The coalition would fall. And believe me Skykru would be the first one the other clans turned to. Your weaponry would make you attractive to all clans”. 

Clarke avoided Anya’s burning gaze clearly uncomfortable.

“You need to start thinking like a leader as you obviously still have not understood what being one entails” Anya said “Lexa never has the luxury of making decisions just for herself. The clans would have killed her themselves had she rejected the Mountain’s deal.”

Clarke looked taken aback by that statement blinking up at the general.

“You may be stupidly brave and stubborn but you clearly lack skills a leader needs” Anya assessed bluntly “How you managed to survive on your own all this weeks is a complete mystery to me”

They were interrupted by Monty entering the medical bay. The Asian boy smiled brightly at Clarke at seeing her awake “Your mother told me you have woken up, I am so glad to see you alive” his voice was honest.

Anya turned back to Marie blocking out the conversation going on between Clarke and the boy. The girl still laid on the bed completely unmoving and Anya felt hopelessness settle inside her mind.

Lexa came back to the medical bay to relieve Anya later telling the general to go and rest for the night. She assured her that she had slept some over the course of the day. Anya noted that Lexa looked visibly calmer again and had chosen to completely ignore Clarke’s presence in the room. The commander asked her to take the wolf cub outside with her giving the animal the possibility to roam freely through the night as it wanted. The general was silently pleased that the cub did not growl at her when she picked it up but accepted her touch willingly.

Anya had just left as Jackson returned to do the last check up on Marie for the night. He instructed Lexa on what she should keep an eye on. The commander asked if he could provide her with warm clean water and something to wash the girl’s body with.

Lexa shrugged out of her coat as the man left to collect what she had asked for. She placed a small bundle with fresh clothes on the chair and patiently waited for him to return.

“Just be careful not to disturb any of the cannulas or tubes” Jackson cautioned as he handed her a bowl with streaming water and a washcloth. He had also brought some soap but Lexa reclined that showing him a soap she had brought she knew Marie liked the smell of. The man nodded at her thoughtfulness giving her a small smile and squeezing her shoulder comfortingly.

Clarke could see Lexa looking at the shoulder Jackson had squeezed strangely, it was obvious that the man had startled her by the gesture and even through the anger that was still present she silently wondered if no one ever offered Lexa any comfort or if her people truly solely saw her as an unwavering symbol of power. The thought somehow made a sad feeling settle in her mind. Turning on her side she watched as Lexa started washing Marie’s limp body. What surprised her was that Lexa seemed to have taken up to humming a low tune under breath as she did so and she noted how gentle the commander’s touches were on the child’s body.

Lexa felt the weight of Clarke’s gaze on her back but she did not turn to meet her eyes. She would respect Clarke’s obvious wish at being left alone by her.

Washing the girl had been relaxing to her as well and lastly she washed the blood from the blond strands of hair she could reach through the bandage wound tightly around Marie’s head turning the water a slight pink as she did so.

Titus had sent her another messenger just before she had returned to the medical pay urging her to come back telling her that her place was in Polis. She had snorted at the message. She did not need her flamekeeper to remind her of her duty. But she had not been there the last time when Marie had been injured she would not leave the girl behind now.

After she had finished with her task she placed the bowl with the water on an empty table and laid the washcloth next to it. She returned to the chair next to Marie’s bed and took her hand into her own. She stared at the girl’s face intently as if she could make her open her eyes by the sheer power of her will.

She was startled from her thoughts by Clarke uttering her name. Lexa squared her shoulders taking a deep breath purposefully hardening her features before she turned around to the other woman simply looking at her.

Clarke had opened her mouth to say something when she noticed the state of Lexa’s face and asked instead “What happened to your face?”

“Nothing serious” Lexa simply answered keeping her tone completely neutral when Clarke kept looking at her with a sceptical expression she added “Anya did not take the news of Marie’s condition well”.

For Clarke that wasn’t enough information but it was clear the commander was unwilling to offer anything else. It angered her how Lexa had obviously mastered to completely hide her emotions again preferring to see the affects her words had on the other woman. But she wondered why Lexa had obviously let herself been beaten up by Anya just so that she could vent some tension. A sentence Anya had said to her earlier kept bugging at her mind.

“Would they have really killed you if you had rejected the deal?” Clarke asked her voice probing.

Lexa sighed pondering her options shortly before she said “Probably. But accepting the deal could have led to the same outcome. My people were angry I denied them their right for blood.”

Clarke furrowed her brow “But they would not kill their leader like that?”

Lexa could not contain the snort at that “I am merely the vessel of the commander. There have been commanders before me and another will rise after I fall. I am easily replaceable.”

A shiver ran down Clarke’s spine at the way Lexa had answered her tone completely void of emotion as if merely discussing the weather. Lexa surely already had given her some things to think through.

The commander turned around again her body already aching slightly from sitting upright. By the huge dark bruise covering the left side of her ribs she was sure Anya had probably cracked a rib or two earlier. She unlaced her boots and shimmied out of her trouser climbing up onto the bed with Marie and gathering her smaller body tightly against her just as she would if the girl were merely suffering from a nightmare.

Lexa was lost in thought as she gently let her fingers glide over the girl’s back under the covers. Clarke had turned around a long time ago and judging by her evened out breathing had already fallen asleep.

She had not expected the other girl to address her again. She had no idea what Anya might have said to her through the day but she would remember to thank her nevertheless later.

Unbidden Lexa felt herself fall asleep some time later again. Sometime later she woke again with Marie still held firmly to her chest. She sighed lowly slightly disappointed that cuddling did not seem to have worked beneficially at all.

She carefully stretched her body somewhat feeling a painful slash in her chest at the movement. Letting her fingers glide over Marie’s back up to her neck and smoothing some of her free hair out she was surprised to find the hair somewhat sticky.

Startled she brought the fingers to her nose smelling at them and panicking when she smelt blood on them in the darkness of the room. She quickly turned the girl around onto her back entangling herself from the smaller body. Lexa did not think about dressing as she searched blindly for the light Jackson shown her standing on the table next to the bed.

When she finally found the switch the sight that greeted her made her emit a low pitched scream. Marie’s crisp white bandage was tinted red and blood was flowing from her ears beneath the bandage.

 

 

Chapter 82

The scream Lexa emitted had woken Clarke instantly sitting up in the bed startled.

Lexa stood in front of Marie’s bed staring down at her bloodied fingers in disbelieve horror etched deeply into her features.

Clarke carelessly ripped the cannula connecting her to an infusion from her arm. Her legs felt weak as she hurried over to the other bed.

A guard came bursting into the room summoned by the scream and switched on the lights in the whole medical bay.

In just that moment Marie’s body started to convulse heavily and the machines she was connected to started blaring with shrill alarm sounds.

Clarke’s medical training kicked in and she moved to stabilize the girl’s head while the seizures lasted. She turned to Lexa who still stood next to the bed seemingly paralyzed “Get my mother!” Clarke voice was urgent and shrill and snapped Lexa out of her haze. The girl’s state was dire and Clarke’s medical training not enough to help her.

The commander hurried from the room still barefoot and clad only in shorts and her shirt. The guard had already left to retrieve Jackson whose quarters were in the other direction and closer to the medical bay.

The doors to Abby’s quarters were closed and Lexa pounded against them forcefully. The doors glided open a moment later to reveal a disgruntled looking Markus Kane. The man stood frozen for a second with his mouth opened as he took in the commander; blood smeared on her fingers, only half dressed and obviously shaking.

Abby appeared a second later behind him but the woman knew immediately that something was wrong with Marie shoving past Markus and hurrying in the direction of the medical bay. Lexa followed the woman quickly she could not seem to stop the shaking in her fingers as she looked down at the girl’s blood straining them red.

The next minutes passed in a blurred chaos to Lexa. The guard seemed to have thought to notify Anya and the woman came rushing into the medical bay only moments after Abby entered.

Abby and Jackson were occupied trying to fight against the seizures still wracking the girl’s body twisting it in bizarre ways.

Anya’s eyes widened almost comically as she took in the scene. The guard who had awoken her had not said what was wrong just that she needed to come quickly. A small part of her had hoped Marie had woken up and she was crestfallen to see the opposite.

The general stood next to Lexa who had remained in the entrance her gaze focused on her bloodied fingers.

As Anya gently took her outstretched hand Lexa flinched away heavily as if snapped out of a trance. Her green eyes were wide as she looked at Anya “I had fallen asleep…” the words were laden with so much raw sorrow that Anya had to swallow against the lump in her throat.

Just to do something Anya cleaned Lexa’s fingers off of the blood with the water that still stood on the table and forced the commander down onto an empty chair. The younger woman was shaking almost violently and was pale.

Clarke had been shooed away from her mother and slowly approached them looking Lexa over “She has fallen into shock” she assessed lowly worry in her blue eyes. The blonde leader had never seen the commander like this so far away from the unwavering force she portrayed all the time.

Now that her fingers had been washed clean Lexa’s gaze had returned to Marie’s bed and she still could not stop her fingers from shaking, she felt the blood rushing loudly in her ears.

“She needs to lay down” Clarke said to Anya knowing that addressing Lexa in person would probably not work.

Anya nodded and pulled Lexa from the chair guiding her to an empty bed and forcing her down and even covering her with a blanket. Clarke pulled a curtain to hinder the commander from watching her mother and Jackson work on the girl.

The general knew that she could not offer any kind of assistance to the doctors trying to save Marie’s life. The realization settled into her that they may not succeed this time with a painful lump in her throat. She stayed with Lexa instead speaking softly to her in their native tongue.

Clarke had fetched a glass filled with an unknown liquid and passed it over to the older woman telling her that the commander needed to drink. She accepted the glass and helped Lexa to drink the substance. Clarke had returned to her own bed deeply uncomfortable with seeing Lexa like this.

It seemed to take forever for focus to return to Lexa’s green eyes and she instantly sat back up when it did. “They are still operating?” she asked Anya immediately.

The general nodded with a heavy heart. “Do you prefer to wait here?” Anya questioned knowing that they both did not enjoy the atmosphere of the sterile room and that the familiar surroundings of their tent might offer more comfort but Lexa nodded unwilling to leave.

Clarke had turned onto her side glancing over at the commander and Anya. Lexa’s green eyes connected with hers for a moment and she was shocked at the haunted sorrowful look in them.

“Can you get me my clothes?” Lexa requested from Anya and dressed again after the general fetched them for her. She remained standing back rigid and shoulders drawn in a tense line.

Abby and Jackson had finished the actual operation stopping the source of the new bleeding and had made another scan with the machine from the Mountain.

Their expression already told both of them what had been the outcome. Lexa felt the strength drain from her body and she sunk onto the bed while Anya covered her face with her hands.

After a moment Lexa stood again from the bed and went around the curtain. Marie looked unchanged still connected to the machine breathing for her. The bandage had been changed and was now clean again. Lexa’s eyes were sad and misted with tears as she addressed Jackson with a wavering voice “What has changed?”

The man swallowed before he answered “The new bleeding has destroyed essential parts of her brain. If we switch off the artificial ventilation she will die in a few moments.”

Lexa felt a tear slide down her cheek as she grasped her limp fingers to hold the girl’s hand one last time.

“I am sorry” the man said his voice honest and eyes sad.

“We will leave you to say your goodbyes” Abby offered her voice kinder than Lexa had ever heard.

Anya had stood from the chair and now stood back next to Lexa. She felt as if she was suffocating under the sudden pressure on her chest and she had not even noticed that she was actually crying as well.

Jackson still hovered behind them uncertain as they had not reacted to their words yet.

“The switch just needs to be flicked?” Lexa asked her voice wooden and hollow dreading what had to be done.

The man nodded wanting to offer to do it for them but the words died on his tongue at the glare he received from the commander her eyes seemed to burn in the artificial light of the medical bay. He simply nodded again mutely and turned to give them some privacy.

“A switch?!” Lexa’s voice sounded almost hysterical by now. She would have liked nothing better than to just wait for Marie to open her eyes again, letting this machine breathe for her until she could again.

Anya bent over Marie’s form pressing a kiss to her forehead and said “Your fight is over, my little star”. A few tears fell from Anya’s cheeks onto Marie’s face leaving glistening tracks in their wake. She stepped back slightly her hand wavering in front of the piece of plastic that would ultimately kill Marie not quiet bringing herself to actually touch it.

Lexa squeezed her hand shaking her head mutely telling her that she would do it. The commander was powerless to stop the sob escaping her mouth as she laid her fingers on the switch. Pressing her eyes closed and feeling more tears slide down her face soundlessly she turned the switch.

Another sob teared from her throat as she did the only thing that made sense right now, namely throw her arms around Anya who quickly enveloped her. She could feel her larger body shaking slightly under the force of her own tears.

Clarke had turned to watch what was going on and felt her own eyes mist over with tears. She wanted to stand up and offer them consolation but she doubted it would be welcome.

Lexa did not look down again as she stepped back out of Anya’s arms. Her face hardened again in the blink of seconds only her eyes still showing some of the sorrow she obviously felt.

Anya straightened herself as well watching Lexa donning her calm mask of the commander but her gaze still travelled down to Marie’s body.

“We will take her body back to Polis” Lexa proclaimed her voice sounding foreign but unwavering in its force. Both Abby and Jackson were quiet obviously shaken by the commander’s reaction and at the speed her sorrow was masked. “We leave for Polis in the hour” she addressed Anya waiting for her acknowledgment.

The woman glared at them daring them to object but the doctors remained silent. Lexa nodded once to them and swept from the room without even glancing at Clarke.

Anya remained standing next to Marie’s bed for a moment longer and she gently took her hand into hers for one last time as new tears gathered in her eyes. Blinking them away Anya squeezed the girl’s hand just once and just as she wanted to let go she felt the faintest pressure coming from Marie’s hand.

The general sucked in a startled breath looking down at Marie’s hand in disbelieve. She already thought she had imagined the girl squeezing back when her fingers moved again slightly.

Suddenly the girl started to cough. Jackson whirled around having stayed waiting to prepare the girl’s body for the commander to take with them.

“That is impossible” the man uttered staring down at the girl with widened eyes.

“What is happening?” Anya questioned bewildered as the girl’s coughs increased.

“She is breathing” he said springing into action to remove the tubes from the artificial ventilation from her body hindering her natural breathing to a huge degree.

He reconnected the girl to the machine recording her vital signs and was shaking his head at the things as it clearly showed a strong heartbeat and a healthy pulse.

The man hurried from the room calling loudly behind Abby who had wanted to rest for the rest of the night. The commander still stood at the end of the corridor speaking to one of her own guards already ordering their camp to be dismantled immediately.

Lexa turned back when she heard Jackson calling Clarke’s mother back. She left the confused guard behind also returning to the medical bay with quick hurried strides.

Anya stood next to Marie’s bed and was looking down at the girl with a disbelieving smile. Lexa scrunched her brow as she thought to see the girl’s chest rising and falling as if she was breathing.

You are not imagining things, Lexa” Anya addressed her; her voice lighter again “She is breathing again”

Lexa’s eyes widened as she stepped fully into the room. Jackson and Abby were examining the girl checking her reflexes. Both were completely perplexed as they seemed to have restored completely. They wanted to repeat the scan they had done just after the last operation and Lexa just nodded for them to proceed.

They waited until they had finished and brought the girl back to the bed. Both doctors stood in front of a monitor and were absolutely baffled at what they saw. The areas of the girl’s brain which had clearly been destroyed had wondrously healed not even showing any kind of scarification.

“What is it?” Lexa finally asked feeling utterly strained.

Abby shook her head still unable to wrap her mind about what had happened “She is completely healthy. I have absolutely no idea how that is possible, but her scans look completely normal again”.

“So she will wake?” Lexa asked her voice sounding desperately hopeful now.

Abby nodded with a smile lightening her face “I don’t know exactly when, as this is bound to have dwindled her strength, but yes, she will wake”.

The doctors both excused themselves for the rest of the night but wanted to be notified should something change again.

Anya was arguing lowly with Lexa to go back outside and rest. The commander looked ready to collapse at this point. Her features were drawn with exhaustion and she seemed caught between the desire to cry and laugh at once.

Lexa shook her head firmly “I want to be here when she wakes up”.

With a sigh Anya nodded but she pointed to the bed next to Marie’s “Then at least sleep here. I will wake you as soon as something changes”.

Lexa finally followed her suggestion although she obviously had not wanted to when it looked as if she would fall from the chair while falling asleep next to Marie’s bed. After only a moment of closing her eyes the commander’s breathing evened out succumbing to the exhaustion.

Anya smiled softly at the younger woman and covered her body with a blanket before she turned back to Marie’s bed. She was unsure if she should be holding the girl’s hand again or simply wait for her to wake on her own.

In the end she did gently gather the girl’s hand back into her own and even though they still were slack to her touch it seemed to her that some tension had returned to them.

Silently she wondered at the seemingly impossible healing of such an injury. Maybe it was possible for Marie to heal her own injuries but only if they were life threatening and the healing did not happen consciously?

She was still convinced that the girl’s condition was caused by Marie healing the gash on her arm after she had killed the bounty hunters. They desperately needed to know more about the strange powers the child seemed to possess. But Anya was already convinced it would be best for all of them if Marie simply refrained from using them altogether.

Anya waited patiently for Marie’s condition to change somewhat and when it finally did she was almost relived to recognize the tell-tale signs of a starting nightmare in the girl.

Lexa seemed to have only dozed lightly and was instantly awake when the girl started to toss even slightly under the covers. The commander sat up abruptly looking over to Marie and quickly standing from the bed, with a frown she noticed that she had still been wearing her boots in the bed.

She is dreaming?” Lexa wondered lowly to Anya.

The general looked up at her with a strange expression on her face as she answered “Obviously. I would have never thought to be happy about seeing her have nightmares again.”

Lexa snorted under her breath but as the girl’s tossing got more violent with each passing moment they tried to wake the girl for good addressing her softly.

The commander gently let her fingers glide over her cheek while Anya squeezed her hand more forcefully.

After a few more moments Marie finally quieted again before her grey eyes fluttered open for good.

Marie looked slightly confused as she looked between both of them and recognized the Ark’s medical bay. Both Anya and Lexa were looking down at her strangely, both showing a mixture of deep grief with absolute happiness.

“What happened?” the girl rasped her voice gruff and hoarse from disuse.

“Ssshhh” Lexa soothed the girl immediately wanting one of the doctors to check her over first just to be on the save side. Anya had caught up with her train of thought obviously and quickly left the room.

Lexa just stared down at the girl with a smile on her face and to her surprise tears in her eyes. Marie’s expression was confused as she saw a tear slide down the commander’s face.

Carefully she stretched out her fingers brushing the tear from her cheek while she idly wondered why the simply movement of her arm felt so strenuous now. She tried to remember what had happened scrunching up her brow in thought.

Lexa looked alarmed as she noticed the grimace on the girl’s face “Are you in any kind of pain?” she immediately wanted to know slightly panicked.

“No” Marie reassured coughing slightly, speaking was obviously difficult as well and her throat felt raw and hurt.

Jackson and Abby both returned with Anya. Marie was even more confused when they welcomed her back looking between all the adults in utter bewilderment.

Abby quickly checked the girl over making sure that everything was alright with her. The only thing the girl said was that her throat hurt and that her body felt strangely heavy. The doctor told her that was expected from the mechanical ventilation and that her body was simply exhausted. Marie mutely wondered why she did require ventilation at all.

The woman gave her something to drink to sooth her throat but swallowing by itself already hurt. Abby reassured both Anya and Lexa who were obviously worried about that, that the tube had just scratched open some tissue in her throat which would regulate itself without help in a few days. The girl should only take care to keep hydrated.

“So she can leave to our tent?” Lexa checked after Abby had finished her examination. The older woman sighed but nodded “I would have liked to have her under supervision for a longer period of time. But if I can check her over again in the morning and in a few days she should be fine”.

Jackson gently removed all the connections to the machines from Marie’s body and she was ready to leave. Anya simply swept the girl up into her arms startling her slightly and carried her outside closely followed by Lexa.

All Marie was feeling was still prominently confusion when Anya laid her down on a bunch of furs in their tent. She still could not remember what had happened at all no matter how hard she tried.

Risha immediately climbed up her chest licking at her face in obvious joy at seeing her human again distracting Marie from her thoughts. Giggling slightly at the feeling of the wolf’s wet tongue on her face Marie shoved the cub a few inches down her body. She stretched slightly and yawned.

When Anya asked her if she felt alright Marie nodded stating that she was just tired. The woman nodded telling her to sleep then. Both of them watched as Marie’s breathing evened out quickly and they both stared at the girl’s chest rising and falling rhythmical for long moments before they were convinced she would not suddenly cease breathing.

 

 

 

Chapter 83

Finding sleep was nearly impossible for Lexa this night. She felt the unquenchable need to make sure that Marie continued to breathe fearing that if she only closed her eyes for a second the girl would have already died. The commander kept her eyes focused solely on Marie not having blown out all the candles around the tent she was still able to clearly see the little movements of her chest.

Her eyes burnt from the strain she put on them trying hard not to blink at all. Anya’s breathing had evened out sometime ago and Lexa was the only one keeping watch over them. She could not ban the flashes of herself flicking the switch and stopping the ventilation keeping Marie alive from her mind no matter how hard she tried.

Lexa thought she understood slightly better now how tormenting the flicking of a switch could be as her thoughts drifted back to Clarke. It angered herself that she had completely lost herself in the medical bay. The only one who had ever seen her this exposed and weak had been Anya after Costia’s head had been delivered to her bed.

Luna’s words at the festivities in Polis came back to her mind and she looked at the girl lying next to her eyes with soft eyes. The girl’s skin thankfully had lost its deathly pale reflexion and her cheeks were a healthy rosy colour again. Luna had been correct in her assessment that Marie meant much more to them than a simple second should. She had thought Luna had wanted to imply a threat to Marie’s life back then but now she understood that watching this girl die would also destroy a part of Anya and herself.

Her thoughts were interrupted when Marie’s face scrunched up and the girl started to toss and turn obviously the beginning signs of a nightmare. Risha who had still been lying on the girl’s chest also asleep was awoken by the movements of the body under her own and crawled down Marie’s body rolling herself in a tight ball at the foot of the bed.

Lexa gently touched the girl’s shoulders shaking them slightly in order to wake her. Her grey eyes flew open almost instantly sitting up in the bunch of furs gasping for breath.

“It was just a dream” Lexa reassured Marie her voice soft and low trying not to wake Anya. The last days had been taxing to both of them physically as well as emotionally.

Tears suddenly gathered in Marie’s grey eyes as she vehemently shook her head. Her voice was still gruff and speaking seemed to be causing her some pain “No … no, I couldn’t …”

“Ssshh” Lexa soothed the upset girl pulling her smaller body into a tight embrace. She let her hand glide over the girl’s back in a circular motion and Marie seemed to press her head to Lexa’s chest immediately listening to her strong heartbeat.

She probed herself up against the headboard of the bed and gathered a fur around Marie’s body making sure to keep her warm as she waited for the girl to calm down. Lexa could still feel the girl’s body shaking slightly and she felt the front of her shirt getting moist with the tears the girl was shedding almost inaudibly.

Lexa felt herself shuddering involuntary at the thought that only hours ago they had both been sure they would be bringing Marie’s body back to Polis to burn on a pyre having watched her draw her last breath.

No matter how quiet Lexa had tried to keep the girl Anya still was woken by the slight sounds. The woman’s brown eyes were tired when she looked over them. She quickly assessed that Lexa was already handling the situation and simply rolled over turning her back to them clearly intent on continuing to sleep.

Lexa quietly stood from the bed keeping Marie’s body wrapped in the fur against her chest and feeling the girl coiling her legs around her hip as if on instinct Lexa stepped behind the curtain separating the sleeping area from the rest of the tent.

Her bare feet were slightly cold against the floor of the tent as the weather was quickly getting colder now. The way Marie clung to her the commander wondered if the girl actually remembered what had happened or if she had simply caught on with the way both of them had reacted to her.

“Do you want a tea?” Lexa offered hoping that a tea with honey would help at least a little against the girl’s raw throat.

She felt Marie nodding her head against her chest although the girl remained silent winding her arms around Lexa’s neck. Lexa momentarily tightened her hold over the girl’s body in silent reassurance. Stocking the fire back to life was proving more difficult than she had anticipated with Marie in her arms. Lexa noticed quickly that she would impossibly be able to heat water and pour some in a cup without burning either herself or Marie.

Getting the girl to sit on a chair also took her a few moments of a great deal of persuasion as Marie was reluctant to let go of her. Lexa wanted to ask the girl what her dreams had been about but only after she had finished the tea sensing that Marie might need more physically reassurance.

The moments until the water was heated enough passed in silence and just as Lexa poured water over herbs in a cup and immediately added honey to it Marie suddenly spoke her voice low and unsure “Will you really show me the ocean?”

Lexa nearly dropped the cup in shock at the question. She felt her throat constrict painfully at the thought that Marie might have caught what was going on around her the whole time unable to wake up. She put the cup on a table next to Marie and crouched down in front of the girl meeting the girl’s grey eyes with her own “You remember?”

Marie nodded her face falling as she did. She pulled the furs tighter around her body before she spoke “I heard you and Anya” the girl stopped her brow furrowed as if in deep thought “but you both seemed so far away”.

“You had a bleeding in your brain, Marie” Lexa explained carefully trying to remember the word Abby and Jackson had used for it, when she remembered the term she added “An aneurysm Abby called it”.

Marie looked up as if trying to look inside her head and as she did so her face pulled into an adorable grimace and Lexa was unable to stop a quiet chuckle at the sight. The smile slipped from her face when Marie resumed speaking clutching the fur so tightly her knuckles were white under her skin “I was sooo cold … and I could not concentrate … I tried to say something … but my body just did not move … no matter how hard I screamed …”. The girl’s words were strained and hard to understand and felt like a slap to Lexa’ face mind flashing back to flicking the switch.

She gently wiped away the tears still falling from Marie’s grey eyes squeezing the girl’s shoulder as she stood and passed the cup over to her.

The words the girl uttered next felt like they wanted to tear her heart apart. “I am sorry for almost leaving” the girl’s eyes were so openly expressing her guilt that Lexa could do nothing but shake her head swallowing against the lump in her throat. The commander felt the need to say “I am sorry for almost making you leave” but she swallowed the words down before they could leave her mouth.

Silence settled between them when Marie’s eyes flashed and she looked up again “Has Clarke survived?”

The commander nodded touched that even though the girl had nearly died herself only hours ago – or had she actually been dead for a few moments? – She thought to inquire about Clarke.

“I had tried to heal her” Marie uttered looking down at the cup in her hands her face drawn with concentration.

“It is alright” Lexa was quick to quell the girl’s worry “We still do not know enough about your strange powers”.

But Marie shook her head again “No, I remember trying to heal her. Real hard … and then … everything became hazy …”

Something clicked in Lexa’s mind and she looked down at the girl with a sudden realization. “Did you feel strange after you healed Anya? Or after you healed me in Polis?” she questioned crouching down in front of the girl again.

Marie immediately shook her head in the negative “No. It was easy to heal Anya…” the girl’s words trailed off again.

Lexa was almost absolutely sure now that healing Anya had not caused her to pass out but rather trying too hard to heal Clarke and failing at that. She would discuss with Anya what she thought about the matter later. She silently wondered why the girl was obviously able to heal herself and Anya but had failed to heal Clarke. Lexa first thought the girl might only be able to heal wounds she herself had inflicted when she remember that Anya’s arm had been injured by one of the bounty hunters and the wound had not been life threatening either. She shook her head slightly stopping her silent mussing as there was no sense in trying to solve this riddle when she clearly had no solution.

“You have to promise something to me, Marie” Lexa addressed the girl her voice serious and calm.

The girl instantly looked up at her and nodded indicating she listened.

“Do not try to heal anyone anymore” Lexa demanded her eyes burning their intensity and when the girl opened her mouth to interject something the commander added “If you notice that your power does not answer to you on your first attempt, stop immediately” her voice was strong and demanding leaving no room for discussion.

Marie’s eyes widened as she understood that Lexa was convinced her aneurysm and her failed attempt to heal Clarke were connected and she nodded immediately again.

When the girl rubbed at her temples Lexa was immediately alarmed “Do you have a headache?” she questioned instantly taking the girl’s hands away from her face inspecting her head to look for any new possible bleedings.

Marie quickly shook her head looking slightly sheepish as she did so.

After Marie had finished the cup of tea Lexa urged their charge to go back to bed. Abby had told them the girl would need more rest and they would make sure she got plenty of that.

When it was clear that Marie had problems falling asleep but tried to keep still under the furs trying to let Anya sleep undisturbed Lexa urged the girl to cuddle up to her softly humming the lullaby to her she already had in the medical bay. Lexa hazily remembered one of her parents singing the same tune to her in what felt like an eternity ago, she had forgotten if the lullaby had any text but the melody had stuck in her mind. The melody seemed to work in soothing Marie’s obviously restless mind and her breathing evened out once again her head lying on Lexa’s chest.

The morning dawned too quickly to Anya’s liking and she still felt exhausted when the wolf jumping from the bed and leaving the tent awoke her. The general turned over and saw Marie cuddle to Lexa her head lying on the woman’s chest and both still soundly asleep and she felt her eyes soften.

The feeling of being watched woke Lexa from her own sleep and her green eyes connected with Anya’s brown ones instantly. Finding the time to talk to Anya now as good as any other Lexa lowly retold to her former mentor what the girl had remembered last night. She watched a flash of relief pass over Anya’s features as she told her that healing her arm had most definitely not caused Marie’s condition.

The girl woke up with a yawn just as Lexa had finished telling Anya everything and the girl was startled when Anya immediately made her promise not to heal anyone in the next time not even herself or Lexa. They both knew the girl would probably not keep her promise up if one of them would be seriously wounded though.

They both kept a very close eye on the girl the whole morning watching her every move and it was obviously irritating the girl slightly. The guard who brought them breakfast did not know the commander’s second personally but all of them were relieved to hear that the girl was obviously back to full health.

Even though Marie claimed to feel absolutely fine save for her throat Lexa demanded that she actually did go to the medical bay to get the check up from Abby. If Titus did not sent another messenger this day Lexa would even wait the time Abby wanted to look the girl over again. She knew that once they had left Arkadia no one would be able to help Marie should she somehow suffer from a relapse.

The girl grumbled slightly on the way to the medical bay but followed Lexa and Anya obediently. Both Abby and Jackson were already waiting for them.

Clarke was still in the bed she had been in the previous night. The blonde woman smiled a kind smile at Marie as the girl waved to her. She observed how both Lexa and Anya seemed to hover constantly around the girl as if she might just fall over any second and were watching her mother and Jackson checking the girl over critically.

“We would like to discuss something with you later, commander” Abby addressed the younger woman officially as the Ark’s chancellor. Lexa nodded her face stoic and back rigid but her eyes never left Marie not even for a moment.

In Clarke’s opinion the way Anya and Lexa were obviously treating Marie was rather cute but she doubted either of them would be pleased to hear that.

Abby lastly unwounded the bandage around Marie’s head. The wounds which had been made for the invasive procedure were very small and barely noticeable under her hair. But Abby made sure that both Lexa and Anya were aware that the wounds as small as they may seem from the outside reached inside the girl’s head and that the bone protecting her brain would need time to heal which meant that they would need to be careful she did not fall on her head or the whole bone might crack under pressure.

Surprisingly it was Marie herself who inquired how she should be progressing with her training then. Abby arched a brow at the girl’s annoyed tone “You may train” she said and when she was the girl’s features light up she was quick to clarify “In a few days, after you had had more rest. And you need to make sure not be knocked over the head or to fall on hard surfaces”.

Both Anya and Lexa nodded that they understood as the doctor switched her gaze to them. Abby made a few more tests with Marie intrigued that all her reflexes were restored and only the small wounds from the operation remained as testament of her near death experience.

The chancellor officially invited the commander to the council meeting that was bound to start any minute. She had connected Marie to some kind of machine to detect her brain activities just checking that they were not overlooking something and the test should run for a few hours efficiently making the girl stay in the medical bay as well.

The commander accepted the invitation to the meeting and left with Abby. Jackson remained behind to change the bandage on Clarke’s wound while Anya stayed to keep Marie company.

It was clear the girl was bored being stuck in the bed with nothing to do. “Can you tell me about Lexa’s early training?” Marie asked in a hopeful tone.

Anya shot her down immediately “No” was her simple answer.

Marie pouted up at the woman but she was simply ignored.

“Can you tell me another story then?” the girl pleaded with her mentor.

Anya shook her head “You should be resting”.

“I am bored” the girl exclaimed loudly as Anya glared down at her.

“We can repeat your lesson on the tax system then” she suggested although she knew the girl would not want to as she had hated that particular lesson.

Marie pulled a face at that just as Anya had predicted and crossed her arms over her chest with a pout on her face.

Anya shook her head at the girl’s childish antics her eyes glaring half-heartily at her but the half-smile pulling at her own lips belied her reprimand.

Clarke found the way Marie was trying to manipulate the woman amusing and cute on a level she had not expected. Somehow she had expected the relationship between Marie and both of her mentors to be restricted to teaching her their ways mostly teaching her how to fight. She had not expected the gentleness with which both of them had handled the girl while she was in a coma but somehow watching Anya interacting now with her was completely different. For some reason she had anticipated for grounders to treat children around them like small adults with the same seriousness they carried around each other. Seeing now how Anya took the girl’s childish antics in stride as if she was used to them already made her review the picture she had painted in her mind about the grounders even more then their grief had the previous night.

She was surprised when Marie suddenly called out her name. Before the girl could say anything else Anya growled something at the girl in their native tongue from which Clarke understood nothing.

“No one must know of your powers” the woman had reminded Marie quickly her voice as sharp as ever “Remember that”.

The girl had looked chastised for a moment before she nodded mumbling “I had just wanted to tell her that I am glad she is well”.

Clarke was surprised that the girl was obviously already able to perfectly speak and understand the language still so foreign to her.

The general had nodded at Marie with a relieved expression and the girl had repeated her words in English voice soft and smiling kindly as she did. Clarke had thanked her taken aback slightly by her concern.

 

 

 

Chapter 84

In the end Marie fell asleep after Anya had ignored her for long enough silencing her with a glare every time she tried to get her mentor’s attention.

Clarke chuckled slightly as Anya gently tucked the covers more securely around the girl “I never pictured you to be good with kids” she had spoken quicker than her thoughts had caught up with and clamped her mouth shut at the deathly glare the blonde woman threw her way.

After a last glance at Marie sleeping peacefully the woman silently stood from the chair and came over to Clarke the glare still on her face “You truly never think before you speak?” Anya sneered at the younger woman.

“It’s just …” Clarke desperately searched for words to express the contradiction the grounders were to her.

“Do you think educating a second is just about beating them black and blue until they learn how to fight, hammer strategical thinking into them from dawn until sun set?” the general asked glaring down at Clarke towering over her.

Clarke was left speechless under the force of her brown eyes and she knew she had deeply affronted the woman with her words. But she had not meant them as an insult at all.

“No, I apologize that I offended you” Clarke quickly tried to reassure the woman.

Anya merely huffed her glare still intense “You still have absolute no idea about our culture” she settled on.

Clarke sighed but nodded after a moment as she could not deny that. She thought she knew all there was to know about the grounders, violence and war, but the longer she watched them the stronger she knew that her view of the grounders was blindsided by the rage she felt for being betrayed by Lexa.

“I had simply not thought that she would be so close to you” Clarke tried to express some of what she had noticed.

Anya snorted at that “Of course she is. If you take up a second you become their family. You spent your whole time with them, day and night. You watch as they grow into the warriors they can be under your tutelage.”

Clarke thought about the general’s words for a moment as her mind came up with scenes of how Lexa’s early life might have looked like with Anya. She quickly shook those thoughts from her head “I had not thought you would share a sleeping place”.

Anya shortly glanced back to Marie “She is too young to be left on her own. But you are right partly, not all seconds share such a strong bond with their firsts.”

As if speaking to herself Clarke said surprising Anya with the sudden change of topic “Before the Mountain Lexa invited me to Polis”

Anya was silent as she waited for Clarke to finish.

“She said it would change the way I think about your people” Clarke finally said breathing deep to chase away her dark thoughts.

Anya nodded “I am sure you would be surprised by Polis” folding her arms over her chest.

“How so?” Clarke asked clearly interested.

“Polis is the capitol now. A place of peace. You would find it very different from TonDC” Anya said simply not elaborating.

The sound of footsteps approaching the medical bay made the general turn from Clarke’s bed and Lexa entered a moment later her brow raised in question to Anya at seeing the woman by Clarke’s side.

Abby followed closely after the commander and Jackson showed her the result of Clarke’s last blood test which showed complete clearance of the blood poisoning from her system. The woman smiled at her daughter “You are free to go, Clarke”.  The blonde let out a relieved sigh and instantly stood from the bed. Her blue eyes connected with Lexa’s for long tense moments before the commander turned away and Clarke left the medical bay without another word.

Anya sighed under her breath already dreading the confrontation that was bound to happen between both leaders.

Abby looked at the recording of Marie’s brain activity and found it completely normal. She still had no logical explanation as to how the girl had healed. The doctor told Anya and Lexa that Marie seemed absolutely healthy again save for the little holes in her head from the operation but that she could not understand how that was possible. When Abby started to mention that she would like to do some deeper tests with the girl’s blood and cells trying to figure out what had triggered the sudden healing both woman exchanged uneasy glances. For both of their tastes what Abby was suggesting sounded way too similar to what the Mountain had done to their people for ages.

“Does she need another check-up?” Lexa stopped Abby’s enumeration of what she could test.

The doctor blinked once at being interrupted like that but she shook her head “I doubt that is necessary. If she is still here in three days I would just repeat the shorter scans”.

Lexa nodded while Anya gently shook the girl awake.

“She will tire more quickly for a few days and needs rest for her body to build up its reserves again” Abby said as Anya offered her hand to the girl to stand up from the bed “And truly be cautious of her hitting her head”.

The commander nodded with a serious expression and they left the medical bay again.

Gustus and Indra were standing in front of the commander’s tent Octavia shadowing the dark skinned warrior unobtrusively. The guard smiled kindly at the girl his dark eyes softened as he saw Marie walking again obviously still tired but on her own feet. The guard who brought breakfast to the commander’s tent had had already spread news that the commander’s second had recovered but no one had known exactly what had been wrong with the girl in the first place.

“When are we leaving, Heda?” Indra asked eager to leave Arkadia and head back to TonDC.

“We will not leave to Polis for a few days longer” Lexa answered simply and added “But your unit is free to return to TonDC to prepare for the cold season”.

The village chief nodded quickly instructing Octavia to relay the order to her unit that they would leave at first light the following day and to prepare ahead. The young brunette woman nodded and left to execute her firsts’ order.

“You should go inside and lie down” Anya said to Marie giving her a gentle shove in the direction of the tent flap. Marie gave her an innocent look clearly not impressed with the suggestion and when Anya kept on looking at the tent Marie switched her focus to Lexa. The commander thinned her lips slightly shaking her head at the girl. Marie dropped her innocent look and entered the tent with a heavy pout on her face. Lexa chuckled slightly when the girl was out of side she had previously already noticed that Marie had taken up the habit of trying to manipulate her into allowing something Anya already had forbidden or getting her to contradict Anya’s orders.

Lexa was not necessarily convinced that just because the girl had went into the tent meant that she had actually followed Anya’s order at all. She was proven correctly when she asked all three of them to follow her into her tent, wanting to discuss with them what she had just spoken about with the council from Skykru.

Marie sat on one of the chairs Risha at her feet on the ground and she smiled while she played with the wolf cub.

Anya narrowed her eyes at the girl as her grey eyes snapped to them when they entered the tent looking just like a deer caught in a trap and guiltily biting at her lip. The general mutely pointed at the curtain to the sleeping area and Marie scurried to her feet quickly hastening to obey the woman’s demand now.

Risha looked behind the girl as she hurried away her head cocked sideways and actually growling slightly at Anya before the cub quickly followed the girl. The general looked less then amused as her eyes narrowed at the small animal retreating behind the curtain.

Lexa suppressed a smirk at the sight and cleared her throat retelling what the council had wanted from her. The chancellor and Markus Kane had proposed to move a small portion of their people to the Mountain to build a medical facility there intended for all the clans.

Anya snorted at the idea her skin already crawling at the mere thought of having to return to that place. She doubted anyone of their people would have a different opinion.

“I have already rejected their proposition” Lexa reassured her general noticing the silent dissent on all of their faces “I know that our people would never willingly go to the Mountain to seek out medical care. But we have sort of reached a compromise. Skykru will enter the Mountain once with a large group, accompanied by myself to gather all they might find useful and afterwards the Mountain will be sealed, banned from entering the place ever again.”

“What about the weapons?” Indra asked cautiously. TonDC was near to Arkadia and she felt uneasy with the prospect of Skykru garnering even more guns.

Lexa shook her head “They were not part of the compromise. No weapons are to leave the Mountain. That is why Skykru will not enter the Mountain alone but rather under supervision”.

Anya and Indra nodded their acceptance in unison.

Lexa waited a moment “I have not spoken to their Council yet, but I plan to propose to Skykru to join the coalition.”

Silence met her words and the commander watched them intently trying to assess their reactions to her plan. Lexa already knew that Titus would not back her up on her plan and she also knew that at least half of the clans would not openly accept Skykru among them. But she highly doubted it would be long for conflict to break out between Skykru and the clans of the coalition if they were not all subjected to the same laws. A simple trade treaty and a ceasefire which was now the only thing binding Skykru to Trikru solely and not the coalition in its entirety would not hold.

Had Skykru not made their camp in the middle of her coalition she might have been able to ignore them longer and simply keep a lose treaty with them. But just their geographical position together with the weapons they possessed made them a desirable target for all clans who wanted to shatter the coalition. She was aware that bringing them into the coalition would only fuel the conflicts in the beginning but she dearly hoped that she could make the ambassadors and by thus the clans see what benefits Skykru could offer to them long-term.

“Heda the clans will not stand for that” Gustus cautiously said clearly hesitant to overstep his position. Lexa nodded to him subtly signalling to her guard that in the small round she welcomed all of their honest opinions.

“I am aware that the clans won’t accept that lightly” Lexa answered.

“But what would the benefits be of bringing them into the coalition?” Indra asked her brow furrowed. Although she had respect for Markus Kane specifically and had taken Octavia as her second she still viewed most of Skykru as utter idiots unable to adjust to the life on the earth.

“Skykru possess knowledge superior to ours in various fields” Lexa vaguely answered. She had briefly spoken with Abby about the infant mortality on the Ark when the chancellor had mentioned that they were lifting their “one-child-per-family” rule now that they were on the ground. She was astounded to hear that children and their mothers seldom died on the Ark, while she knew that dying in childbed was sadly customary among their people. It was even customary within most of the clans not to name a child until they passed their first summer as many of those who were born still died during their first year of life.

But she was not just interested in their medical knowledge. A lot of old tech was distributed amongst the clans that no one knew anymore for what it once had been made. Skykru and their mechanics were resourceful in ways her own people had forgotten. She knew it would take a lot of time and gentle persuasion to get the clans used to the idea of actually using something Skykru might offer but Skykru might be the key to bring her people into the peaceful future she had always envisioned.

“And what about Azgeda” Anya remarked “I actually agree that engaging Skykru might be advantageous but not at the moment”.

Lexa nodded with a sigh as Anya had just pointed out the reason why she had not yet made her proposition to the Ark’s council. She needed the coalition more stable again before she could try to convince the clans to accept Skykru.

“Queen Nia needs to fall once and for all” Lexa mused as if to herself sitting down on her throne and fiddling with a dagger between her long slender fingers.

“We already know she is breaking laws of the coalition” Anya remarked hinting at Ontari’s supposed existence.

Lexa shook her head with a tired sigh, all the spies she had sent to Azgeda to find out if Roan’s word was true had not returned and were probably all dead by now. “We do not know if prince Roan spoke the truth” Lexa cautioned. Indra looked confused as she had not been privy to this information.

“Prince Roan told me that his mother harboured her own nightblood” Lexa casually stated.

“That is treason” Indra seethed immediately her eyes narrowing.

Lexa nodded “Yes. But we do not know if his words are truthful and calling Nia out might provoke her to challenge me. I know that I cannot fall right now or the coalition would crumble.”

She knew Gustus had been correct when he had told her that she was the coalition. No matter which nightblood would succeed her, she doubted any of them would manage to keep the clans allied together now that the Mountain had fallen. And if the Azgeda nightblood existed and was to take up the mantle of the commander all the clans would fall into utter chaos.

“And the problem with the bandits roaming the borders needs to be resolved quickly as well” Lexa stated addressing Indra mostly “We cannot have more villages robbed before the cold season starts”. The chief nodded in acceptance to take care of the bandits.

The commander dismissed Indra and Gustus from her tent. She was slightly surprised that Titus had not yet sent another messenger which either meant that the conflict had been kept at bay by her teacher successfully or he simply had not found time to send another.

Anya quickly had checked on Marie finding the girl curled up under her furs Risha in her arms and both soundly asleep. She returned to Lexa’s side wordlessly.

“When will Skykru enter the Mountain?” the general questioned already sensing that they would still be with them then.

“In two days’ time” Lexa answered confirming Anya’s suspicion.

“Is giving them all the equipment of the Mountain really wise?” the older woman wondered aloud.

Lexa arched a brow at her former mentor “At least they asked before simply taking everything. This way we will have some control over what will stay behind. Markus wanted to speak with Raven if there might be a possibility to safely blow up the whole complex.”

“I had rather thought they would have wanted to move there all together” Anya mused sarcastically.

Lexa snorted lightly at that “I do not doubt that they will have thought about it, but even they must see that the clans cannot stand for that. Too many of our people have died there”.

“But it still seems strange that they accepted your denial so easily” Anya commented.

“Who said they accepted easily?” Lexa retorted twirling the dagger between her fingers humour in her light tone “Abby actually seemed ready to reject the treaty with Trikru instead”.

Anya shook her head with a disbelieving grunt. They both knew Skykru would never survive without help from the clans. Even if they would last through the cold season they still had made their camp on coalition territory and even their guns would not be able to protect them against an army banded together from the whole coalition. Skykru had to know that they were allowed to stay simply out of generosity as nothing was forcing the commander to let them stay. But the general was still unconvinced that Skykru were thinking clearly. She had met enough individuals of them by now to know that some of them were actually convinced that the earth they had crashed into belonged to them.

“I won’t make the proposition to them until the clans are calmer again” Lexa said after a few moments of silent contemplation. She knew as the commander she could essentially force the clans to accept Skykru but that would not be in her interest in the long run. They needed to accept Skykru on their own or Lexa would be damned to mediate between Skykru and the other clans on a daily basis.

I am sorry for the longer wait. I was away on a conference and now I am visiting my family for a few days.

 

Chapter 85

Sometime later the same day Lexa and Anya were in their tent together with their second giving her a lecture about some of the laws the entirety of the coalition shared and how some clans still stuck to their own laws.

The sound of a rover approaching distracted Marie from her lesson. Anya had her brows furrowed “They had left already to the Mountain?”

The irritation was clear on Lexa’s face although she had spoken to the Council just a few hours ago she had no knowledge of their intention to leave their perimeter and they would not go hunting with this loud thing. Anger bubbled up inside her if Skykru wanted to hold their alliances they would have to be more mindful of the unspoken restraints between the clans. If they accidentally were to kill another one of her people she would not be able to contain the clans calling for heavy retribution against Skykru.

She quickly fastened her red sash at her shoulder after donning on her heavy dark coat and stepped out of her tent Anya on her heel as Marie waited a moment unsure if she should follow or not and settled on hurrying behind them.

The grounders had erected their tents just outside the fence of Skykru as their camp did not offer enough space for the tents for all of the warriors who had travelled with the commander. The gate was still opened and no guards tried to hold them back as Lexa strode into the space before the Ark.

The rover had been pulled to a stop in front of the Ark as well and the commander recognized Bellamy and another boy who she had forgotten the name from. A horse was standing next to the strange vehicle and Lexa immediately spotted that its fur had been painted like Azgeda liked to do to their mounts. Her lips thinned in realization that they would have only gotten hold of the horse if they had killed the rightful owner.

One boy had a bandage wrapped around his throat blood already seeping through. She did not know the boy personally and he had a red blinking thing in hand. The commander had no idea what the purpose of the thing might be.

She saw the chancellor hurry to the obviously injured boy and shove his bandage away ordering him to the medical bay immediately.

Lexa stopped Markus Kane in his tracks as the man quizzed Bellamy on what had happened. The man looked slightly guilty as he confessed that a small group from Skykru had been fanning out around their camp looking for other survivors. The commander narrowed her eyes at this new piece of information irritated that the Council had not at least informed her.

Her green eyes turned to Bellamy still holding onto his gun “Have you killed the warrior who the horse belonged to, boy?” she nearly snarled at him through clenched teeth.

The young man looked slightly taken aback at her anger and his eyes returned to Kane “Sir, they hurt Jasper first. He had taken the tracking beacon from them and the warrior was in the process of slitting his throat”.

Lexa clenched her hands into fists at the side of her body unused to being ignored and disrespected like that from anyone.

Anya suddenly appeared pressing a dagger at the boy’s throat in a clear warning as she seethed “Do not disrespect the commander like that, idiot boy!”

The commander could see Clarke hurrying to them with a thunderous expression on her face and Lexa immediately called Anya back “Enough, Anya, he does not know any better”

“Then they should learn” Anya shot back her eyes blazing “Soon, or the peace will never hold”.

Clarke stopped just short of them so near that Lexa could practically feel the other’s body heat. “You have found another station?” the blonde inquired immediately urgency in her voice.

Bellamy shook his head “Just a tracking beacon not the station itself”.

“Which station?” Clarke shot back.

“Farm station” Bellamy said.

Lexa thinned her lips her eyes narrowing even though she felt some satisfaction, Azgeda disobeying her orders in not notifying the coalition of finding Skykru in their territory was just what she needed to summon queen Nia before the ambassadors. She quickly thought her options through a part of this station was not enough to accuse Nia, she needed actual survivors.

“You will return to Azgeda and look for your people” she commanded making all the others pause save Anya who had already come to the same conclusion as her commander had. But she could not send Skykru there alone, commander and general shared a silent glance and Anya nodded subtly accepting the silent order “Anya and a small unit will travel with you”.

“Why would you of all people help us find our people?” Bellamy questioned a challenge clear in his dark eyes. It was obvious he was harbouring a clear distrust against the commander.

Lexa stared the young man down calmly “All clans had received order to notify the capitol were they to find Skykru survivors, if queen Nia failed to so she disobeyed a direct order from me” it went unsaid that ignoring an direct order from the commander was considered treason punishable by death. 

“Why would you do that?” Clarke asked highly suspicious of the other woman’s motives.

The distrust clearly visible in her blue eyes prompted Lexa to choose a defensive response instead of the truth “I do not need to justify my motives to anyone”. The power was clear in her voice and Clarke just met her stare with defiance in her blue eyes.

“Is there snow where you search for them?” Marie interrupted seemingly oblivious to the rising tension between both women. Lexa turned to face the girl her gaze softening as she did so “That depends on how far they will have to go into Azgeda territory”.

“Can I come?” Marie eagerly asked. Lexa contemplated silently if it would be save to let the girl accompany Anya. The commander remembered that she had promised Skykru to go with them to the Mountain in two days’ time and she doubted the girl would be eager to return to the place so she finally nodded, Lexa had not doubt in her mind that Anya would keep her save and it should not be a violent mission. The group would travel under the direct orders of the commander and should Azgeda attack them that was as good as a declaration of war and she doubted Nia would be as dumb as that.

“I see no reason why not” Lexa said to Marie’s obvious delight judging by the smile lightening up her face as she heard the answer. Anya did not seem as convinced by Lexa’s decision but she did not voice her opinion aloud.

Kane suggested that they should be travelling to Azgeda territory in a rover or two increasing the speed of the mission a lot. Anya was wary to accept to have to get into one of the strange vehicles clearly preferring to ride instead. But Lexa convinced her general otherwise. The rovers provided at least some cover a horse never could and she knew she would soon travel back to Polis and would definitely prefer to have Anya and Marie back at her side then.

Even though Marie had never before been inside an actual rover it was clear the girl was exited at the prospect. She eagerly told Anya and Lexa that she had seen one in a movie a few years ago and that people used to travel with something called a car similar to a rover in the old world. Anya quickly gathered a few things they might need while Kane had vanished inside of the Ark to organize the team that would drive with them. Only Ryder and another soldier named Dax would also accompany them aside from the group Markus Kane assembled at the moment.

“I would prefer for Marie to stay with you” Anya said as Marie shortly went to search for Risha. Lexa had already told the girl that she would not be able to take the cub with her.

Lexa shook her head “I cannot go with them myself as I want to be there when they enter Mount Weather. I doubt she would be thrilled to have to return there” she purposefully left out that the same would clearly apply to Anya herself.

The general raised her brow at her “Fine. I will watch over her for both of us” she conceded with determination in her brown eyes.

Lexa’s lips pulled up in a slight smile “I know you will”.

Marie returned to the tent with the cub in her arms. “Can I really not take her with me?” the girl pleaded with an innocent look.

Anya immediately shook her head “Absolutely not” her tone left no room for further discussion and Marie reluctantly put Risha down. Lexa gave their second her dagger back but they had both decided not to give her any other weapon for now.

Lexa together with Gustus accompanied them back inside of the fence from Arkadia. The general noticed that Raven who had set up the machine Abby had used to examine Marie would be driving their rover. She noted how the young woman seemed to move easier than a few days ago and as her eyes fell to the other’s legs the absence of the brace encasing her leg caught her attention.

Clarke stood next to the rover caught up in a heated discussion with her mother. The words which wafted over to them telling Anya that the blond woman wanted to accompany the group and was outright forbidden by her mother.

“You just got back, Clarke” Abby’s voice sounded agitated. To the general it sounded more as if the chancellor was afraid her daughter would run and not return once she set foot out of Arkadia and judging by Clarke’s reaction her fears were probably not completely unfounded.

Bellamy, Monty and two others Anya did not know were also standing around the rover. A dark haired girl kissed Bellamy on the mouth telling him to “be safe and come back”. The young man smiled a loopy side grin at her “Of course, Mel”.

When the group of Skykru noticed their arrival they all nodded respectfully at the general and the two male warriors completely ignoring Marie’s presence all together. A dark blond haired young woman introduced herself as Harper and a young man with short cropped dark hair and an olive complexion introduced himself as Nathan Miller.

Monty and Bellamy were the only ones of the group who both smiled friendly at Marie clearly remembering the young girl from their time after landing on earth.

The commander saw the group climb into the vehicle and held her general gaze for a moment at the unease clear on Anya’s face. They had already said their goodbyes in the privacy of their tent but Marie still waved at her with a smile as the rover drove off.

The atmosphere inside of the rover was tense. Anya, Ryder and Dax all looked so tense their bodies might snap any moment. Marie seemed oblivious to the tension looking around her with wide interested eyes. Kane who had also joined the group watched the young girl with a kind smile. Seeing the girl already so adapted into this foreign culture gave him personally hope there might really be a chance for them to live alongside the grounders in peace.

Kane had tried to start a conversation a few times already but it was painfully obvious that none of the warriors were interested in polite small talk. As the ground became more uneven the inside of the rover was bumped around. The first time it happened without warning Anya had startled badly clutching Marie to herself protectively. The girl had blinked up at her mentor with wide grey eyes more alarmed at Anya’s expression than anything else.

“How long until the border?” Anya asked through clenched teeth already yearning for the moment to step out of this thing. The pace they travelled with was different than a horse would go so it was hard for her to judge and she found that looking out of a window made her rather sick so she had stopped watching their surroundings rush by.

She watched the boy named Monty fiddle around with the red blinking thing they had called a tracking beacon.

“Not long” Raven shouted from the driver seat. All of a sudden she hit the brakes hard as a tree trunk blocked the path ahead of them.

Bellamy stood from his seat looking out. Darkness was already falling around them as the night descended around them. Anya pushed Marie to stay seated and also mustered the fallen tree and her eyes caught immediately that the tree had been cut down. She harshly pulled the young man back inside “The tree was cut down”.

“We do not know that” Kane answered looking at the fallen tree dubiously. Ryder looked at Anya for a moment with a subtle eye roll. Why these people seemed to think to know more about theses woods than the people who had grown up in them astounded Anya to no end.

When another tree behind them started to creek and fall over with a loud resonating echo startling birds in their vicinity prompting them to flee in a rush Anya looked at Kane with a raised brow.

The general and her warriors grabbed for their weapons but Kane shook his head “We have no idea how many there might be”.

Anya nodded although the number of opponents would not change their situation. “We can wait them out” Markus suggested even though Anya thought his voice sounded alarmingly unsure. Lexa had asked her to mostly follow Skykru’s lead and only intervene should they have a run in with Azgeda soldiers so she nodded with a little sigh resigning herself for a long wait.

Why are we waiting?” the girl asked softly. Surprising all of the Skykru members at speaking Trigedasleng as if she spoke the language for years now instead of just a few weeks.

A smirk was pulling at Anya’s lips as she deadpanned “Because Skykru are idiots”. Mirroring smirks were displayed on Dax’ and Ryder’s faces while Marie looked up at the general with a furrowed brow.

They waited in silence for what felt like hours until Bellamy’s patience seemed to snap “What are they waiting for?”

Markus shrugged his shoulders seemingly still convinced that they would be able to wait whoever had felled the trees out in the rover. Anya was well aware that they in fact could not and judging by the dense trees around them they had either just passed the border over to Azgeda territory or were still on the last miles from Trikru.

The girl started to wiggle around next to Anya in her seat and the general narrowed her eyes at her inability to sit still all of a sudden “What is it?” she asked lowly.

I need to pee” the girl’s voice was coloured with desperation telling the woman that the girl’s need was rather pressing. The girl looked absolutely disgusted when Dax simply suggested to just let go in a serious voice. “He did not mean that, did he?” the girl whispered so low only Anya caught the words. The general looked doubtful it was not always possible to get relieve when on a scouting mission.

Markus caught up with the girl wiggling understanding where the problem was routed without understanding her actual words. Before the man could say anything though Bellamy suddenly stood up looking out of the opening again and was hoisted out of the vehicle just as suddenly.

“Come out with your hands up” a voice commanded from the darkness outside “Or the boy dies”. Anya instantly noted that the command was issued in Gonasleng rather than Trigedasleng which she found odd.

“Alright” Markus shouted lying down his gun “We are coming out, don’t harm him”.

She had a hand on a dagger hidden under her coat as Kane opened the door and was instantly pulled out of the rover and thrown on the ground outside. Marie sat closer to the exit and was hauled outside before Anya could pull her back.

Drawing her dagger she jumped out of the small exit rather than letting herself be pulled out. Her eyes instantly found Marie’s body pressed on the ground a few meters away with a blade pressed against her throat. Ryder and Dax jumped from the rover as well with loud war cries but fell to the ground as they were suddenly hit from behind. Their bodies hitting the ground with silent thuds.

Marie struggled against the hands holding her down feeling the blade pressed against her throat breaking the skin slightly and a small trail of blood slid down her neck. Anya stood faced off with various opponents while all the others it seemed were pressed down on the ground around them. The general turned around herself extracting her sword as she did.

“Easy” one of the masked people said “Put your sword down, we just want the rover”.

Anya knew that she could impossibly beat all of them and reluctantly lowered her weapons an inch before she was roughly kicked down.

 

 

 

Chapter 86

“All targets secure” a female voice shouted from behind Anya direction.

One of the strangers suddenly searched Monty taking the tracking beacon from him the boy instantly trying to make a grab for the thing “It is mine!”

“Monty, don’t!” Bellamy shouted to stop him from fighting back.

“Monty?” a female voice echoed and the woman who had spoken lowered her weapon slightly eyes widening behind the mask covering her face.

“Mom?” the boy asked back his voice full of disbelieve as he instantly ceased his struggling against the arms restraining him.

Anya saw recognition flash through Marie’s grey eyes as the woman who had spoken lifted her mask. The similarity between the boy and her was strikingly obvious signifying their familial relationship.

Mother and son fell into each other’s arms with a sob and a male voice commanded “Farm station, stand down!”

The weapon which had been pressed to Anya’s neck was taken away and the woman instantly sprung to her feet pushing the one still holding Marie down away from the girl harshly.

“I said stand down!” the voice repeated and a man jumped from the rover pulling his own mask away revealing a dark skinned man underneath.

“Pike?” Markus questioned in disbelief as he took the outstretched hand from the man hauling from the ground.

Anya inspected the small cut on Marie’s throat and went over to Ryder and Dax still lying knocked out cold on the ground. Both were sprouting bumps but looked fine otherwise.

“Are you hurt elsewhere?” Anya checked with Marie worry in her eyes. The general noted how the ones who had attacked them all seemed to stiffen slightly at hearing Trigedasleng some even turning hateful eyes to her. Marie quickly shook her head “Are you hurt?” the girl wanted to know. Anya shook her head slightly touched by the girl’s concern.

“I didn’t think you made it” Kane said to Pike after giving him a friendly hug.

Monty let his eyes glide over the group which Anya quickly counted were twelve people in total and judging by their stature all adults. “Where is Dad?” the boy asked after not finding his father among them. His mother had a troubled look on his face as she shook her head “Your father didn’t make it” and they hugged again.

“How many of you are there?” Markus asked Pike who seemingly commanded the small group.

“63” the dark skinned man immediately answered “The rest are camped in the mountains north from here. Grounder killers one and all. Am I right?”

Anya thinned her lips as the others from his group answered with a sort of war cry to his question, pulling Marie closer to herself and remaining next to both of her warriors just in case these people should suddenly decide to attack once again. The part of Skykru which had travelled with them looked uneasy at the others reaction but did not comment on it.

“63?” Kane echoed “Farm station left with over three times that much”

“We landed with that number too” there was regret clear in the man’s voice.

“The Ice Nation can be ruthless” Anya interjected wanting to make it clear from the beginning that not her clan had killed their people “Take pride in the number you saved”.

“Anya, this is Charles Pike. He was a teacher on the Ark” Markus introduced the man officially “This is Anya, general of Trikru and the commander, our trusted allies”.

“I’ll have to take your word for it” Pike said his eyes full of distrust. Anya met his stare with her eyes fierce and unyielding.

Marie suddenly touched her arm garnering her attention the desperation clear on her young face once again and reminding Anya that she still needed to relieve herself. The general nodded to her “We will return shortly” she guided Marie towards the treeline while others had started to roll away the tree blocking the rover’s path. She heard Pike ask after her second and was astounded to hear that they obviously knew each other.

“Who is Charles Pike to you?” Anya asked once they were far enough from the others that Marie quickly relieved herself. The girl hurried herself “He lived next to us. He sometimes watched over me when mummy had to work. And he was teaching earth skills on the Ark”.

“You are from the station which landed in Azgeda?” Anya checked and when the girl nodded, she could not quiet stop a feeling of doubt settle in her mind. Marie did not seem to notice though and Anya guided her back to the group.

The tree was still being moved when they returned and Pike instantly approached them not looking at the general at all but rather trying to embrace Marie.

The girl seemed bewildered by the gestured and stiffened in his arms. Anya growled lowly under her breath in warning to release her. The man looked up at her with a hateful glare keeping his hands on Marie’s shoulders as he stood up and when he looked at Marie he smiled although it was strained “You have changed quite a bit, kid”.

Marie’s eyes were uneasy as she nodded and when she looked up at Anya the man instantly tried to regain her attention “Hey, there is no need to be afraid, kid”.

It irked Anya how the man kept calling Marie “kid” as if he had some sort of claim over the girl. A small part of her actually feared that he did as she had no idea how deep their previous connection might have been.

They were interrupted when Ryder suddenly woke up instantly making a grab for one of his swords. Anya rushed over to the warrior before he would kill someone “Stand down!” she harshly commanded and after he did she lowly explained that these people were the survivors they had been looking for.

Pike was still speaking with Marie having kept the girl efficiently from going behind Anya.

“We cannot transport so many people in one rover” Raven said stepping up to Kane.

The man shook his head “No, we cannot. But we do not have enough rovers and driving back and forth would take several days”.

Anya was suddenly glad she had thought to pack thing she and Marie might need for a few days and she knew that Ryder and Dax were prepared as well.

“Charles” Markus called the dark skinned man over who still had a hand on Marie’s shoulder. The girl let herself be guided by him although she seemed rather reluctant. “Are there injured among your people?” Markus questioned and Pike nodded “Three, a broken leg and an arrow to the thigh”.

Markus nodded in acknowledgement “We will go there with the rover, collect the injured and the rest will have to travel by foot to Arkadia. You all will be save there”.

“Can you lead the rest in the direction of Arkadia?” Markus asked Anya knowing full well that the general was bound to know the best routes through the forests around them.

The general nodded scoffing lowly that the man even had to ask. “Thank you” Markus said honestly “Can we reach Arkadia before the trip to the Mountain is scheduled?”

“If we hurry” Anya answered. Dusk had fallen around them and they would to need to walk through the darkness but it was manageable.

Markus asked a few more things of Pike hearing that twelve children were still among their group and determining that the walk would be too long for them so that the rover was only sent to them with Raven and one man from Farm Station. They would need to drive back slowly so that the others could somehow keep up at least part of the way until they crossed back into Trikru territory.

Marie inched away from Charles when Markus started to question the man relieve passing over her features and she smiled at Anya when she returned to her side. The general met her smile slightly and squeezed the girl’s shoulder in silent reassurance feeling the girl lean against her body instantly. Anya was well aware how Pike seemed to stare at them in utter bewilderment and she knew she needed to keep Marie away from him, she somehow had a feeling that the man was bound to cause trouble.

Pike was occupied for some time though as Markus updated him on the progress Arkadia had made.

Dax fortunately woke a few moments before they started to move. Anya had been reluctant to let the warrior be heaved into the rover and was glad he could just walk with them now.

The general ordered Ryder to scout slightly ahead of them and Dax to keep their rear save as the others organized to walk behind her. Marie was still leaning against her and Anya noted how tired the girl looked all of a sudden. She cursed under her breath as she felt the girl slacken slightly almost falling asleep on her feet. The rover had already left so there was no other alternative then to carry the girl.

Anya gathered the girl into her arm shushing her when Marie mumbled that she was fine to walk. “Is she okay?” Markus checked immediately a worried expression on his face, he had heard from Abby that the girl had nearly died only two days ago.

Anya nodded simply adjusting the girl more securely against herself “She is just tired”.

Pike’s dark eyes seemed to burn holes into her back but she ignored the man. Pike instead asked Kane almost provokingly “Last time we had contact with the kids you were under attack by grounders. What changed?”

“Turns out we had a common enemy” Bellamy answered instead catching up with them.

“What happened to them?” the man inquired.

“We won” Bellamy said simply.

“We need to move faster” Anya exclaimed loudly. She wanted to cover as much ground as possible before she was sure Skykru would not be able to walk any further forcing them to stop for the night.

They travelled for some time in silence as Anya gradually forced them to increase their pace until their laboured breathing told her that she could not push them any further.

Marie started to squirm in her arms which either meant she was waking up or falling into a nightmare. Anya gently let her fingers glide through her hair while keeping her secure in the other arm. Marie’s grey eyes blinked open a few moments later almost gleaming in the pale light of the full moon filtering through the foliage of trees above them. The girl tightened her arms minutely around Anya’s neck with a soft smile. “Welcome back, little star” Anya whispered to her in a gentle voice “Do you want to rest some more?”

Marie shook her head in the negative and Anya stopped shortly to put the girl on her own feet. She snorted lightly as she noticed that the Skykru looked relieved that she had stopped and seemed to groan in silent protest when she resumed walking. Anya had to decrease her pace when she noted that even Marie could not match up with her fast strides remembering that Abby had told them to keep the girl rested.

“Mom” she heard Monty say behind them “I need to know what happened to Dad” when his mother only told him that he loved him and only wanted to find him he begged to know and the woman relented.

“We landed in the snow” she started and Anya could see Marie’s ears perking up at that. A small smirk pulled at her lips at the girl’s fascination with the snow she had never seen so far.

“Your father said it absorbed some of the impact” the woman’s voice was heavy clearly pained by recalling the memory “That’s why we survived. The snow looked so beautiful” she said a sob interrupting her words. “Charles?” she asked in a shaky voice clearly unable to continue.

The man turned slightly to Monty still keeping to move. Anya could see Marie straining to hear what was being said just as she herself listened on in their conversation.

“The children were playing in it” Pike remembered and paused before his tone got heavy “They were the first to die. Fifteen of them. If not for your father it would have been more”.

Anya felt a flash of sympathy for them and could not stop her mind from coming up with an image of Marie playing with other children her age in the snow just to be killed unexpectedly by Azgeda warriors.

“He pulled four kids back into the ship. All four alive today” he said his voice grave “They got him when he went back for the sixth. Your father died a hero, Monty”.

The boy could not contain the sob bubbling from his chest and his mother enveloped him again.

Anya adjusted her pace to offer them some time but almost instantly regretted it a moment later at the words that left Charles Pike’s mouth “We are fighting grounders ever since”.

“That was Ice Nation” Kane was quick to correct and spared a quick glance at Anya “Not all grounders are the same”.

“They are to me” Pike deadpanned his voice grave and honest.

Anya would have liked nothing more than to turn around and slit the man’s impertinent throat where he stood. But the way the girl suddenly latched onto her hand made her quench her desire to kill him and concentrate on her charge instead.

The uneasy silence that settled between the rests of Skykru was testament enough that at least the others from Arkadia did not share the man’s opinion but Anya was aware that the commander needed to be notified that this man could cause some serious trouble if he managed to spread his opinion amongst Skykru.

Can we go and see the snow sometime other then?” Marie suddenly asked as if purposefully trying to divert her attention from the tension around her.

Anya could not contain the snort at the innocent question “The snow will come to us soon enough, Marie”.

Bellamy explained to Pike how they had battled against Mount Weather and the fascination Anya detected for the place in Pike’s questions made her skin crawl.

“So Mount Weather is ours?” the man asked.

Anya rolled her eyes unable for them to see as she still led the group. Just what they had needed, another man who thought the ground they walked on could just be claimed like that, Anya sarcastically thought. They had already been moving for some hours now and she knew they had long since passed back into Trikru territory.

“We will use it for supplies” Markus said and explaining that the commander allowed them to take what they wanted and then seal the thing for good.

Pike obviously had no idea about the concept of what the commander was. “This is a underground city that withstood a nuclear war” he said disbelief that they were giving that up willingly colouring his voice “We need to think about what will happen when the grounders break their truce, because they will…”

Anya abruptly let go of Marie’s hand whirling around to face the man on the balls of her feet pressing a dagger to his throat before he had even blinked “One more word” she seethed “And I will slit your throat!”

The man’s eyes widened at the threat. Bird calls resonating around her signalling that they had just passed the first ring of scouts scattered around the woods. The survivors from Farm Station made to grab their weapons to defend their leader as Kane desperately tried to clear the situation.

“Anya, please” the man pleaded as Anya put more pressure on the blade just enough to break his skin and draw a bit of blood.

She pushed the man away from her making him stumble back and collide with a younger man having walked behind him “That was for drawing blood from my second” she seethed “I will not repeat my warning” she snarled at all of them.

The general had enough of the man testing her patience and emitted a birdcall of herself making several warriors drop from the trees answering her silent command. The survivors from Farm Station reacted more severely than the rest of Skykru flinching like startled pray.

“Signal the commander that we are on our way back” Anya loudly commanded her eyes still fixed onto Charles Pike. A younger warrior nodded and instantly vanished between the treeline hurrying to obey her command. She knew it had been unnecessary to call the scouts from their posts but the man was clearly testing her patience and the little show of power clearly had worked wonders to shut him up.

The general knew that the rest of the way to Arkadia was still several hours. Judging by the tired faces around her she would not be able to push them the whole distance so making a stop now would have to do. Anya would be able to rest more easily with more warriors from Trikru around.

“We will rest for the night” she loudly exclaimed and the warriors around her sprung into well practised action preparing a little make-shift camp.

 

Chapter 87

It was obvious that the survivors from Farm Station were impressed with the efficient and obviously well practised way the scouts from Trikru worked around them. A fire was blazing quickly in the clearing offering some warmth against the air that had turned almost bitingly cold in the darkness. But it was clear that they would rather bite of their tongues than admit their silent astonishment.

Anya doubted that any of them were aware of the scouts still posted all around them keeping an eye on predators that might get too closely to the group or any rouge bandits.

A few scouts already returned with something they had caught quickly to sustain them for the night. They had also filled all their water canteens at a nearby stream offering water to the Skykru as they went around.

Markus was the first to thank them for their unsolicited efforts and Anya accepted his thanks with a silent nod of acknowledgment. The general sighed under her breath, if there would be more of his kind among Skykru it would be easier to work with them to sustain peace. The dark haired man was interested in the culture they had developed clearly willing to adapt to it at least in some way.

Marie sat beside the fire with Ryder who was the only one of the Trikru warriors she knew personally beside Anya. The general was still occupied talking to one of the scouts and had left her by the fire.

The man passed her the first portion of the meat he had roasted quickly over the fire. Marie took the stick from him with a mumbled thanks and cautiously bit into the still hot meat savouring the taste of the fresh meat on her tongue. Ryder smirked at the girl’s obvious enjoyment of the meat his dark eyes kind as he regarded the child sitting next to him. The girl had an aura of softness around her that was not common amongst their people but under the softness he could clearly see a strength he doubted the girl was even aware of yet. She had preserved the almost naïve ability to focus on the beautiful perspectives of life and not bending to the hardship that often was most of their lives.

While Anya was still speaking with the scout Charles stepped over to the fire sitting down on Marie’s other side with a kind smile while he looked at the girl. His eyes turned hateful the second they connected with Ryder’s. The warrior subtly shook his head at the man’s obvious stupidity to advance Marie again after Anya’s clear warning.

“What happened to you, kid?” the dark skinned man asked in a kind tone his eyes probing hers. Marie blinked up at the man slightly confused by the sudden question.

“How have you come to be with …” he seemed to search for a word which Ryder thought would not openly display his dislike for his people and the man settled on “… them?”

“Oh” Marie said “Well …” the girl thought for a moment on how to best explain what had happened. “John was banished from the delinquents and I followed him into the forest. We ran into Trikru scouts who brought us to TonDC” Marie told him honestly “Le … I mean, the commander decided that I could stay” covering her slip with the name quickly before she continued “Someone had to teach me their ways and Anya offered”.

Pike’s eyebrows were raised in a frown feeling that the girl had probably left out a lot. Kane had warned him against offering Marie to come back to Skykru, but he felt he was obliged to get the girl away from the grounders. He owed it to her parents to at least try.

“Kid” he started “you know you do not need to live with them?”

His statement was voiced as a question and Ryder now openly glared at the man who purposefully ignored him. Marie was blinking at the other man with confused eyes clearly overwhelmed.

Pike interpreted her reaction different than Ryder would have moving to envelop the stunned girl “You do not need to be afraid anymore” he reassured “We will keep you save from those savages…” Marie still looked at him like a deer caught in a trap opening and closing her mouth without a sound coming out.

He had barely said the last words before Anya suddenly appeared behind him and without a warning the general knocked the man out with a well-aimed hit of her daggers handle against his temple. The general had the decency to catch his unconscious form before he could fall face first into the fire but she simply pushed him the other way not paying any attention to him anymore.

“I had told him not to do that” Markus sighed hauling Pike slightly away from the fire looking at Anya with apologetic eyes. The general nodded she would not blame all of them for Pike’s obvious stupidity.

Ryder had not expected to be able to see insecurity in Anya’s eyes as she looked down at Marie and as his eyes connected with her brown ones he subtly nodded and left to give them a few moments of privacy.

Anya was breathing harder than she should and she knew it had nothing to do with the exertion of knocking the impertinent idiot out but rather all with the girl looking up at her with those big grey eyes.

Her voice as clear and calm as possible Anya addressed Marie choosing to speak in her mother tongue. The Skykru did not need to understand that Pike had had a deeper effect on her than she would like. “I will ask you this only once, Marie” she said eyes stormy while her voice remained calm. Marie herself looked slightly alarmed at the obvious change in Anya but she nodded signalling that she listened. “Now that the Station you have been born to is down here, do you wish to return to them?” Marie instantly opened her mouth to answer but Anya hushed her with a mere raise of her hand “We will not judge, if you do. The situation has just changed so I would…” she had some problems with actually saying the words “…understand if you would prefer to return to your people. This will be your only chance though”. Her words were heavy and she waited with baited breath for a reaction from the girl.

Marie could not stop the flash of hurt passing over her face at the implication that she would want to return. But she actually did really think about her option before she blurted out the first instinctual answer and doubt took root in her mind seeing how blank Anya’s expression was looking down at her as if it truly would not matter if she left “Do you want me to return to them?” the girl’s voice shook slightly as she voiced her doubt.

Anya took a deep breath before she answered “This is not about what I want, but rather about what you want”. They had already given her the choice between the life of a warrior or another. Previously they had been convinced that no one would tie Marie to Skykru anymore but the arrival of people of the Station she had been born in might still change that.

Marie’s voice was small and she looked into the fire as she uttered her final answer “I do not want to return and leave you and Lexa”.

Anya nodded letting out a relieved breath she not even been aware of holding and sat down next to her charge at the fire squeezing her shoulder as she did so “The matter is settled then and we do not need to speak about this any longer”.

She felt a painful flash of guilt at seeing tears gathered in Marie’s grey eyes reminding her sharply that the girl was sometimes more delicate then she gave her credit for. Trying to silently comfort the girl Anya laid an arm across her back pulling the girl against her side. Marie instantly laid her head into the crook of her neck breathing in the soothing scent she associated solely with Anya.

Ryder returned in silence only inclining his head at Anya as he did so. But the general noted a slight upturn of the corners of his lips nevertheless.

Monty and his mother had sat across from them around the fire and had both watched the exchange. Although neither of them understood a word it was obvious that whatever the general had said to the girl had been serious. Monty, always deceptive of the feelings of others around him, had taken notice of the tears in the girl’s eyes or how she had paled in the middle of the exchange with Anya. When he stood to also get some food from the warrior sitting next to the girl his mother followed him.

Monty crouched down next to Marie softly addressing her although he felt the general’s intense gaze landing on him “Are you alright?” The girl looked up still nestled firmly against Anya and quickly nodded although the fresh tracks of tears on her cheeks clearly indicated otherwise. But Monty knew enough about Marie to take her word for the truth and simply squeezed the girl’s shoulder softly once after he accepted the meat from the warrior. That Marie spoke up before he turned around caught him off guard “I am sorry about your Dad” the girl’s words were so soft and filled with empathy that Monty’s throat felt suffocated by the lump suddenly forming.

Monty’s mother had also gotten handed a stick with meat but while Monty had been cautious and had just wanted to check on the young girl, the woman had already assumed the worst “You are not forced into …”

The woman’s voice had been doubtful and the look she gave Anya clearly conveyed her distrust.

Before either Anya or Ryder could react to the woman’s trailed off accusation something sparked in Marie’s eyes, the empathy suddenly replaced by flaring emotions “No!” she nearly screamed making Anya startle slightly with the volume of her voice. Marie sat up her back straight now and her eyes burning and she turned around her eyes quickly gliding over the Farm Station survivors. Her voice was loud and clear with a hint of frustrated agitation as she exclaimed “I am not forced to stay with Anya, so stop implying that I am! You are trying to force me to do something, they don’t! She even offered to let me return if I wanted” the girl paused looking up at the perplexed woman and her voice had taken on an accusative undertone “But I do NOT want to return!”

The woman could only nod still obviously shocked by the girl’s outburst and returned to her previous place behind her son. It was obvious the girl’s outburst had shocked most of the survivors from Farm Station as some were openly gaping at the girl. Markus was not shocked but still taken aback by the force behind her words.

There was no open reaction from any of the scouts still going around and distributing water. But they had paused what they were doing and had listened and all of them were silently impressed with the way the girl had stood up for herself, no one of them would doubt the girl’s loyalty to the general and their commander.

After she had sat down the tension left Marie’s body sagging into itself slightly. Her eyes were slightly sheepish as she looked up at Anya biting her lip as if afraid she done something wrong. But both Anya and Ryder were looking at the girl with rather impressed expressions and she was relieved that she could not detect any anger hidden in Anya’s brown eyes.

The general actually smirked at her as she put her arm back around her whispering “I knew there was a certain fire to you”.

The group around them remained silent for a rather long time in the aftermath of Marie’s outburst. Markus actually addressed Anya as he collected his own share food from the fire with kind and honest eyes “I am glad she has found her place with you and the commander”. The general only nodded in silent acknowledgment and the man had obviously not anticipated any verbal answer as he sat down next to Bellamy again.

Marie yawned heartily her head lying on Anya’s shoulder feeling the exhaustion of the long walk. She doubted she would have been able to keep up the entirety of the way if Anya had not carried her for a part of the distance.

I will prepare our furs” Anya said lowly and stood up making sure the girl had actually caught her words. The general had packed only two furs, one to lie down on and the other to cover them both, and she placed the furs very closely to the fire.

A scout approached her before she motioned Marie to come over. “Should we organize a horse for you and your second? It would be here before first light” the young warrior probably still a second himself suggested. Anya nodded in acceptance and the warrior left again.

Ryder had to give Marie a gentle shove to get her to stand up as the girl was close to falling asleep where she sat her eyes transfixed by the entrancing dance of the flames.

Marie tiredly shrugged out of her coat and her boots but kept the dagger strapped to her thigh and laid down on the fur. The ground was still hard and rather uncomfortable beneath the single fur but her body was exhausted and she would probably be able to fall asleep sitting on a tree branch if she had to right now. Anya also placed her coat beside them but she kept her weapons within arm’s reach. The general knew that their scouts would keep watch over them for the night but you could never be overly cautious.

Marie immediately snuggled up closely to Anya’s body and listening to the steady beating of her heart lulled her to sleep almost instantly. Anya gently let her fingers glide through the blonde locks of the girl just now noticing that she and Lexa had failed to put any braids back into them in the morning and noting to remember to do that in the morning. Her own body still felt rather tired and she quickly followed the girl into the world of oblivion.

The others around them had more problems getting to sleep as most of Skykru never had to fall asleep on the hard, slightly damp and uneven ground without any kind of cover against the biting cold air. Consequently when Anya rose from the furs at the sound of hooves against the floor of the forest a few members of their little group were still rolling around trying in vain to find a comfortable resting position.

As promised the young warrior had returned leading a bright horse by the reigns into the clearing.

“Is it time to stand up already?” Marie’s muffled voice sounded from beneath the furs still obviously tired. The girl’s question had been loud enough to start rousing more of the group travelling with them and first light was already starting to appear at the edge of the horizon.

Yes” Anya said to the girl bending down to pull the fur away that covered her body “We can leave soon”.

Marie tried to grab the fur and pouted slightly her body shivering as it was suddenly exposed to the cool air of the morning “Not fair” she uttered with a certain whine to her voice. She sat up and quickly pulled the warm coat around her shoulders to guard of some of the sudden cold.

“Rise” Anya simply commanded her tone still gentle and rolled together the first fur while Marie slipped her boots back over her feet lacing them up. When she stood up she handed the fur she had sat on over to Anya and the woman rolled that together as well and stored both in one of the empty saddlebags. The general sent the young warrior away after she accepted the horse from him.

She could see Ryder and Dax also rising from their own furs while the first ones to wake from Skykru quickly went around to wake the rest.

The scouts had kept the fire burning steadily over the night and Marie sat down closer to it in order to catch some of its warmth.

Anya sat down behind her combing the girl’s blonde hair out with the help of her fingers. She quickly plaited a few braids into the long hair securing them in place with a thin strip of leather which had still been in her coat.

From the corner of her eyes Anya could see Charles Pike also regaining consciousness again. She would not have designated it a great loss if he had failed to but she had already known that her blow to his temple would not be fatal but he was bound to still have a blazing headache.

Monty’s mother silently checked with him if the man was alright and Anya caught her telling him quickly to back up from Marie for good and that the girl had clearly made her choice. Judging by the stare the man sent at the girl he was not truly believing the woman’s words and Anya sighed under her breath already mentally preparing for another confrontation.

They were ready to move again soon after and Anya hoisted Marie up on the horse at the front of the saddle immediately mounting up behind the child. This time Ryder and Dax followed on foot directly behind Anya as they now knew that the forest around them was scouted ahead and the scouts that had watched over them during the night would follow them for some time securing their rear.

It did not surprise Anya in the slightest to feel Marie fall asleep relatively shortly after they had begun to move again. The girl only opened her eyes again long after the sun had risen and they were actually nearly at Arkadia.

“Where are we?” Marie asked looking around them. She detected that the forest looked different than it had when they had started and the light told her that she had slept through dawn.

“Nearly there, sleepyhead” Anya said in a teasing tone although she actually had preferred for the girl to sleep as her body obviously still needed the extra rest.

I still have not seen any snow” Marie suddenly stated sounding grumpy.

Anya snorted at the out of the blue remark and the girl’s obvious lack of patience. “Believe me, you will hate the snow quicker than you think” she said after a moment.

Marie cocked her head “Why?”

“Because I will drag you out of bed in the middle of the night to train in it” Anya promised her tone deadly serious.

The girl turned her head to look up at her face “Really?”

“Ask Lexa when we return” Anya assured her second rising a brow at the girl doubting her word.

 

Chapter 88

When they finally reached Arkadia a few hours later it was well past midday. The guards had seen them approaching ahead and the gate had already been opened for them. A crowd of people stood scattered around the open space behind the fence in front of Arkadia obviously waiting to welcome the group of survivors.

Anya spotted Abby, Jackson and Clarke standing only a few paces away from Lexa flanked by Gustus and another burly guard. The general guided her horse over to them with a small bout relieve coursing through her at finally reaching their destination.

Clarke watched how a group of Farm Station survivors followed the Trikru general on foot and how their eyes seemed to widen when they took in Arkadia but she also could not miss how their eyes turned hostile and distrustful at spotting various members of Trikru scattered among them including the commander.

Her eyes seemed to be drawn to Lexa as Anya hoisted Marie from the horse into Lexa’s waiting arms. She noticed the subtle tightening of the brunettes jaw and the flash of worry crossing her green eyes as Marie immediately wound her arms around the commander’s midriff clinging to the woman in what obviously was an uncharacteristic childish gesture for the girl. Her suspicion was confirmed when Lexa shortly held Anya’s eyes before quickly checking the girl over for obvious injuries.

“Are you hurt?” Lexa asked her tone gentle and her eyes still worried when she could not detect any injuries on the girl.

“They were mean” Marie accused her voice slightly whiny as she did so still not giving up her hold over the commander. Lexa’s green eyes immediately narrowed her whole poise transforming now the picture of power itself in the flash of a second as she turned her eyes on the survivors of Farm Station.

Clarke mutely wondered how it was possible for anyone to look as powerful and dare she admit it breath-taking while at the same time being gentle with the girl still encased in her arms. The blonde had taken up enough of their language to understand the meaning behind the few words the commander and the girl had spoken and apprehension settled in her mind that her people were already very well on the way to destroy the tentative peace they now seemed to have with the commander. She could not blame the survivors from Farm Station to be distrustful of Lexa as she herself was now constantly second guessing the brunettes intentions but she had her own personal reasons for that. Clarke had seen Lexa and Anya around Marie enough times in the last days to know that upsetting the girl was a very bad idea as both women were deeply protective of the child interpreting any wrong gesture around the girl as an personal insult.

Anya was also surprised to see Marie acting in that way and wondered if she might have upset the girl more deeply than she had anticipated by offering her a chance to leave.

When Marie caught Clarke staring at her a slight blush settled over the girl’s cheeks and she loosened her arms around Lexa’s midriff stepping away slightly as if she had just now realized that they actually were not in the privacy of their tent but being watched. Lexa mutely squeezed the girl’s shoulder in a silent way to communicate that it was alright.

“They have landed in Azgeda?” Lexa checked with Anya switching to the language shared with Skykru.

Markus had quickly hugged Abby and stepped over to the commander inclining his head respectfully in greeting. Anya nodded to the commander’s question.

“Sixty-three survivors, commander” Markus accounted “I would like to officially thank you on their behalf for offering your help in retrieving the survivors”.

Lexa merely inclined her head in acceptance “Have Azgeda warriors attacked them?”

A dark look passed over Markus face before he answered “Two hundred had landed in Farm Station and survived the fall. Over two thirds have been killed by Ice Nation until now”.

“The ice queen will be called to Polis to answer for her crimes” the commander promised the subtle tightening of her jaw the only outward sign of compassion for those they had lost. Clarke highly doubted that any of her people had even seen the small change wondering slightly when she had become proficient at interpreting the subtle changes in Lexa’s demeanour. “We will leave at first light tomorrow for the Mountain” the commander proclaimed and swept away in the direction of their tents guiding Marie in front of her body with a gentle hand between the girl’s shoulder blades. Clarke had the feeling that she wanted to know what had specifically upset her second so deeply. Once the commander was out of their sight Clarke almost angrily shook her head for once again focusing on the brunette in the first place.

Gustus and the second guard took up their posts outside of the tent after they had entered.

“So what happened?” Lexa asked immediately once the tent’s flap had been closed behind them.

Marie looked slightly guilty still worrying that she had overstepped earlier she apologized “I am sorry for hugging you outside” the girl’s voice was sincere and she lowered her eyes to the ground.

The commander shook her head at the girl “I did not ask you to apologize, but what has happened to upset you?” guiding the girl’s eyes back up by gently tilting her chin upwards.

“The station that fell into Azgeda is Farm Station, the station Marie was born on” Anya interjected when the girl remained silent for a moment. Lexa furrowed her brow not getting the connection between the girl’s origin and the survivors yet.

“The obvious leader of their group, a man named Charles Pike, tried to convince Marie that her place is not among us but at the Ark” Anya elaborated and saw understanding flash in Lexa’s green eyes “He lived close to her family on the Ark and looked after her sometimes”.

Confusion flashed through the commander’s eyes then and Anya detected some doubt in them she herself had felt the night before. So before Lexa could think of offering Marie the same thing she had already done she quickly added “I had offered Marie to let her return, if she wished”.

The general held her breath aware that she had already overstepped her own rank by the offer without consulting Lexa first. The slight narrowing of the commander’s green eyes told her that the commander had come to the same conclusion.

Anya hated how awfully small the girl’s voice sounded as she suddenly asked “You do not want to send me back, do you?”

Lexa’s eyes immediately softened again “Of course not, Marie. And it was not even Anya’s place to offer you to return”.

Marie looked slightly confused at that so Lexa explained “Anya can step back from being your first herself but being the commander’s second is more permanent than that usually only severed by death itself”.

The commander knew that they would have come up with a way for the girl to return to Skykru if that had truly been her wish but it was obvious that the girl was rather scared of being sent back and did not wish to return in the slightest.

“They said you are all savages” Marie suddenly changed the topic away from herself her eyes flashing with a degree of anger Lexa had not anticipated. “How can they think that you are all the same without even knowing you?” the girl exclaimed her churning emotions obvious in the volume of her voice.

Lexa narrowed her eyes at being labelled savage again.

“And they proposed to move into Mount Weather” Marie added the distaste for the place clear in her voice and the tensing of her small frame.

The commander exchanged a glance with her general finding her own troubled feeling mirrored in her brown eyes.

“Skykru will not colonize the Mountain” Lexa immediately reassured her voice firm and her eyes sharp. The consequences for the coalition would be disastrous if that happened. What would hinder Skykru to seal themselves in the Mountain and become the next Mountain Man reactivating the acid fog once they had moved into that dreaded place? She was suddenly glad she had chosen to allow them to gather the materials they thought useful and decided together with the Council that the Mountain would need to be destroyed after that. If she had already been in Polis by now she doubted Skykru would have even consulted with her first before simply moving into the Mountain. Her vision to integrate them into the coalition would have been next to impossible then.

Lexa did not need to tell Marie that it did not matter to her what the survivors of Farm Station thought of her personally. She knew they would learn their place sooner or later or they would simply die unable to adapt to the ground. But she still felt slightly touched how much the girl seemed to take the insult against their people as an insult against herself.

Anya had a smirk on her face and a proud glint her eyes as she said “I dare say Marie made quite the impression on them, I doubt any of them will approach her again”.

“They were mean” Marie repeated her voice whiny again.

The commander quirked a brow at the girl “How were they mean?”

Marie shrugged “They just were. None of you are forcing me to be here … I don’t know why that is so hard to believe, like you are all vicious monsters …”

“And I still have not seen any snow” the girl pouted prompting a laugh from Lexa who shook her head at the girl’s antics.

“You will” Lexa promised “Soon enough”.

“And I already told her that she will hate to train in it” Anya added a teasing note in her voice.

“Have you trained with Anya at night in the snow?” Marie asked immediately.

Lexa snorted “Yes. Training in every weather condition be it night or day is important” and at that the girl’s smile fell from her face. The commander softened her eyes “But you will not train this year at night in the snow. You will still need to get used to the cold”. The way the girl had easily caught a cold after the first exposition to rain mixed with slight exhaustion was proof enough of that.

Anya rolled her eyes subtly “How is her body supposed to build strength then?”

“It will” Lexa assured “With time. And not under extreme pressure”. Seeing the girl almost die just a few days ago had been enough to last for the next years so there was no reason to challenge the girl’s health in such a way.

Marie suddenly looked around the tent “Where is Risha?” the girl asked when she could not spot the wolf cub inside.

“Your cub left a few hours ago” Lexa told their second glad to notice that the girl seemed to have calmed down completely again.

“Mmh” Marie hummed “Can we train now?” she eagerly asked her veins still buzzing with energy at having slept for most of the day.

Lexa and Anya exchanged a silent glance. Training the girl in front of the survivors from Farm Station who obviously already thought the worse about their people was bound to grow a crowd.

“Yes” Lexa agreed but cautioned the girl “But let us know immediately when you tire or feel a headache and watch out for your head”. The commander’s voice was worried silently musing if they should not postpone training her for some time but Anya was correct, Marie’s training already had enough set-backs and she needed to build same stamina or she would never progress.

Lincoln and Octavia were also still in Arkadia under Indra’s order as both of them seemed adapt enough to teach some Skykru on how to hunt properly. The village chief had left at first light to return to TonDC to see to the preparations for the cold season there.

But letting Marie train with one of them was too risky right now. Lincoln would probably manage to be mindful that the girl should not hit her head but Octavia could easily forget or hurt her by accident. One of them would train with her instead just to be sure nothing happened.

“Would you prefer to rest?” the commander offered to Anya unaware of how restful her night had been. But the general instantly declined the offer wanting to be present as well in case one of the new additions to Skykru did something reckless.

“When will I get back to training with a sword?” Marie questioned on the way from their tent back into the perimeter of the Ark. Anya easily could tell who had come from Farm Station by the wariness clear on their faces as they saw them approaching. Gustus and Ryder had fallen into step slightly behind them and the general was aware of the image they conveyed. Both Lexa’s and her faces were relatively blank while Marie seemed to chirp something non-stop now nearly bouncing with excess energy as it seemed.

“We shall see” Lexa answered vaguely aware of all the eyes that had focused on their little group. Sounds of ongoing trainings became louder the nearer they came to the free space Skykru had dedicated to combat training. The commander noted with a flash of satisfaction that many of the warriors who had come to Arkadia with her were now training with a few men from Skykru easily identified by their clothing.

Lincoln was sparring with Bellamy at as they reached the training pit and the others had assembled around the fighters as Lincoln explained what Bellamy was doing incorrectly.

Not using his head to begin with” Anya lowly commented under her breath as they joined the onlookers.

“Can I try?” Marie asked Lexa after touching her arm slightly to get the woman’s attention. Lexa followed Marie’s eyes which were focused on a dark skinned man with a huge bruise formed around his temple. It was obvious the girl was eager to prove her strength to the man so Lexa concluded that this man was Charles Pike. “No, not against Lincoln” Lexa denied and Marie’s eager smile immediately dropped from her face. “You can spar with me or Anya” the commander gave their second the choice.

Marie pulled a face slightly “I can’t beat either of you” she said with an exaggerated sigh. Anya snorted “And you think you could win against Lincoln?” the doubt was clear in her voice and Lexa shook her head subtly.

Lexa spotted Clarke standing next to Monty and Raven also following the fight and an instant later Lincoln had overpowered Bellamy pinning him to the ground just stopping his fist short from connecting with his temple.

“Heda” the warrior respectfully greeted his commander and afterwards offered a hand to Bellamy to hoist him from the floor. The greeting was echoed by all of her own warriors who all now waited eagerly if they might get lucky to see her step into the training pit herself.

“She is the mighty commander?” Lexa heard Pike’s voice float over to them disbelief colouring the man’s tone “Is that some kind of joke?”

The commander narrowed her green eyes in his direction jutting her chin out defiantly. Lexa unsheathed her two short swords looking down at Marie “Watch carefully” she ordered and stepped up to Lincoln.

The man nodded accepting a sword someone handed over to him. Lexa had not even removed her red sash or the heavy shoulder guard used to the added weight after years of daily wearing them now. The commander moved with a grace and speed Lincoln could not match.

Their swords clashed loudly together but Lexa had not even put half her strength behind the blows. She knew Lincoln was heavier than her by far and the man was a skilled fighter in his own right but his skills would never match her own. She hit the man’s fingers holding onto the sword with her next blow making him release the blade with a hiss instantly. Lexa whirled around him putting one sword against his throat while the other was pressed into his back. In a real fight Lincoln would not have lasted more than one attack against her.

“I surrender” Lincoln proclaimed raising his hands to back his words. Lexa nodded to him and he stepped away from her.

“Marie” Lexa called their second over to her loudly. A warrior offered Marie his sword but the blade was meant to be held with both hands and way too long and heavy for a girl as young as their second. So Lexa turned the short swords in her hands holding onto the sharp blades themselves and offering them handle first to the girl. Marie looked up at her with big eyes as she had never attempted to wield two swords at once, she had barely mastered the moves one would do with one sword the last time she had tried.

Lexa motioned Anya over and the general stepped up to them catching on with what the younger woman had in mind without the need for words. Lexa was keenly aware that all eyes including Clarke’s were focused on them and the survivors from Farm Station had started to murmur amongst each other in discontent at seeing a child being called in to train and being handed swords. It did not help that Marie eyed the swords in her hands with obvious insecurities.

“Don’t worry” Lexa reassured the girl in a calm tone “I will guide you”. This sort of practise was not used by many but Anya had also sometimes taught her the exact same way. Anya stood facing both of them her own sword now drawn.

Lexa unfastened the red sash and her shoulder pauldron handing both pieces over to Gustus’ waiting hands and stepped closely behind Marie slightly crouching lower to be on the same height.

The commander nodded to Anya minutely signalling her former mentor to attack. Marie’s grey eyes widened at the ferocity behind the attack her grip on the swords slackening so Lexa quickly stepped even closer wrapping her own hands around Marie’s securing them in place and guiding the girl’s arm so she would be able to deflect the blow easily. She kept a tight hold over the girl’s hands absorbing some of the blow’s strength with her own hands.

They repeated the same procedure for some time before Lexa let go of Marie’s hands only hovering behind the girl to step in should she fail to deflect the blows herself. Anya had also taken out some force of her attacks and slowed slightly to give their second a better chance.

Marie caught on pretty quickly on how to defend herself with the two swords clearly having a better talent at them compared to her attempts at wielding a single heavier sword.

The commander nodded to Anya again signalling her to change her attack from hitting full on the girl’s body testing the girl’s agility.

Marie was caught off guard by the first attack of the general. Lexa quickly had pushed an arm around the girl’s side catching most of the attack’s force with her shoulder and as Anya swept the girl’s feet out from under her in the next attack the commander caught her before she could actually hit the ground making sure her head did not suffer even the slightest blow.

Lexa stepped back from Marie “Attack” she commanded as Anya took up a defensive position. She quickly guided Marie into a perfect stance balancing the girl more evenly with just a few subtle touches.

The girl’s grey eyes were determined as she did her first attempt at an attack but her eyes also betrayed where she wanted the attack to land.

“Quicker” Lexa ordered when Marie was facing Anya again “And stop thinking. The swords are merely an extension of your arms!”

Marie narrowed her eyes slightly. She had been unable thus far to do so. “Trust your body to know the movements” the commander advised.

The girl tightened her grip on the swords as she took a deep breath closing her eyes completely for a moment. Anya waited for her to attack although in a normal fighting situation the opponent would not wait.

The general was slightly surprised with the speed the attack had once Marie snapped her eyes open barely a second later the first sword clashed against hers rather harshly. The woman had not anticipated for their second to get the hang of this fighting technique so quickly and was astonished to feel the other blade come against the other side of her body she had left unguarded while gripping her own sword with two hands.

Shocked at actually having gotten a hit in Marie nearly let the swords drop when she caught sight of a slight bit of fresh blood on the sword that had hit Anya.

“You did very well” Lexa praised her voice kind and her eyes glinting proudly. It seemed Marie had found her weapons of choice now. Short double swords for short distances and throwing knifes for longer distances or even a bow. They would be able to work with her talents quite well.

Marie opened her mouth to apologize but Anya who had detected the flash of horror in her grey eyes just squeezed her shoulder in silent reassurance that she was alright. The worry did not leave Marie’s eyes but she smiled proud with herself.

The Trikru warriors all nodded to the girl when she looked around the onlookers expressing their reverence.

She straightened her spine proudly meeting Pike’s obvious glare without wavering before the commander called her to return to their tent.

 

Chapter 89

“Did you see how I used Anya’s missing guard?” Marie chirped excitedly on their way back to the tent. Her grey eyes were shining in childish delight and both women did not point out that Anya had not used all her abilities. It was rather impressive for Marie to get the techniques of the shorter double blades as it seemed without difficulties. The girl’s skill were still rough and mostly instinctual and needed a lot of work before she would be able to hold her own in a real fight but she definitely had some hereditary talents.

To the girl’s great joy Risha had returned to the tent in their absence and was wagging her tail at the sight of her human. Anya merely rolled her eyes at the wolf cub while Marie immediately crouched down and squealed in surprise when the cub licked her face.

Lexa saw Anya pulling a disgusted face at the sight but felt the corners of her own mouth curl in an involuntary smile.

“She does possess some innate talent” Lexa commented to Anya. Marie was completely absorbed by the wolf cub and had just sat down in the middle of the tent already playing with the cub.

The general nodded with a proud glint to her brown eyes “She has the soul of a warrior”.

“Is the cut deep?” Marie asked her voice worried and her eyes searching for the cut hidden beneath Anya clothes. “I did not mean to hurt you” the girl added “honest…” and they both heard the slight guilt in her tone.

“You do neither need to apologize nor to worry” Anya reassured and her eyes were firm “Being injured in training is normal”. The girl nodded but the general doubted she had really accepted the message yet.

She took of her coat pulling up her shirt revealing a shallow cut which already had stopped bleeding and would not need any attention from a healer at all. “See” Anya prompted “Only a graze” she reassured her eyes softer again.

Marie nodded with a crooked smile which froze on her features immediately “I do not want to hurt you” she added looking smaller and younger again.

“Marie” the commander addressed the girl urging her to step closer to her as she had sat down on a chair next to one of the tables. She gently tilted the girl’s chin up to make their eyes connect and her eyes were open in their expression as Lexa said “We have been over this already. Being a warrior does not mean going around to hurt others. It is rather to learn how to protect your people from harm. Being a warrior is not about violence. Do you understand that?”

“Yeah” the girl said her eyes honest but she shook her head slightly as Lexa still had a finger under her chin “But I meant, that I do not wish to hurt either of you physically”.

Commander and general exchanged a silent gaze both touched by the girl’s obvious concern for them. But Lexa’s lips pulled into a slight smile “We know that. But during training it is normal to sustain minor injuries, just like Anya said. We have both been hurt far worse. And you will also get injured during training sessions, but you will learn from your injuries”.

Marie met her eyes for a silent moment searching for something in Lexa’s green eyes and the commander met her probing gaze steadfast.

Their connection was broken when Gustus announced from the tent’s flap that dinner would be delivered to them minutely.

“Can I have something to feed to Risha?” Marie addressed Gustus himself who nodded with a kind smile on his face as he explained “The hunters have something put aside for your cub specifically”.

“Thank you” Marie answered again smiling freely up at the burly guard. Gustus nodded to her mutely and held the tent flap open for two warriors, a young woman and a man probably as old as Anya, who carried plates filled with food. The man also placed a bowl on one of the table “For the wolf” was all he said and both left without another word.

Marie immediately grabbed the bowl but Anya shook her head “You can feed her after you have eaten” the command clear in her firm tone.

When the girl looked to Lexa the commander already shook her head in the negative suppressing a smirk as she did.

“You can also go hungry of course and feed your damn mutt” Anya reprimanded their charge her tone having taken on a warning edge.

The warning did not fail its intention and Marie immediately put the bowl down on the table again looking apologetically at Risha already waiting at her feet before she muttered a small “Sorry” in Anya’s direction.

“Just eat” the older woman ordered sharply silently wondering why those little situations seemed to continue to come up with Marie. She could not remember having similar problems with Lexa or Tris. Tris had always been obedient to the point and Lexa had only had short bursts of rebellious tendencies that always had ended as quickly as they had come up.

The amusement the older woman noted on Lexa’s face while the commander watched the exchange only angered the general slightly. She had also noted how the girl seemed to always try to get Lexa to overrule her words when the child did not like them. She narrowed her brown eyes at the oblivious ball of fur begging for food from Marie at the girl’s feet. This type of behaviour had increased after Lexa had allowed Marie to keep the damn animal. She should have just left the animal in the forests ignoring Marie’s pleading innocent eyes then, it would have probably saved her from a lot of trouble.

As if the cub sensed Anya’s eyes shooting daggers at her Risha turned her attention to the general now begging for food from her. The smile spreading on the girl’s face as she caught Anya’s disgruntled expression was obviously worth it the general silently admitted to herself.

This night it proved rather difficult to get Marie to sleep. Anya herself was rather exhausted from the long journey and was slightly annoyed that the girl would not stop turning around in the furs trying to find a comfortable position to fall asleep and failing.

Risha had long since sprung down from their bed with a low whine obviously also annoyed with the ongoing movements.

Lexa also found it more difficult to fall asleep. She dreaded the upcoming day and having to enter the Mountain were thousands of her people had been killed. The commander wondered if her former mentor had not thought yet about what they were facing tomorrow or if she had simply pushed all feelings away for the night. The girl’s obvious restlessness was only spurring on the unease which had already settled deep inside her bones.

“Come here” Lexa motioned the girl over lifting up her furs for Marie to slip under as well. Anya shook her a silent thankful look above her shoulder and turned around again to finally settle down for the night. Marie immediately settled into her arms with what sounded like a relieved sigh.

As Lexa carded her fingers through the girl’s blonde locks she felt the girl slip into slumber quickly her body slackening against her. Focusing on Marie’s breathing and feeling her beating heart against her own chest lulled the commander to sleep as well.

The mood in the tent was as tense as a bowstring in the morning and Anya was also now clearly agitated with the prospect to enter the Mountain again. Lexa had gathered her calm façade back over the night but she felt as antsy as Anya obviously did.

The commander sighed chewing some bread and swallowing it forcefully not feeling particularly hungry at all. Anya was trying to force Marie to eat something but the girl vehemently said she was not hungry.

The general lost her patience after a few calm attempts snapping at the girl to eat already and that she needed her strength.

Marie’s complexion turned slightly green as she looked at the food shoved into her hands forcefully by Anya.

“Let her” Lexa interjected and when Anya turned angry eyes on her in protest she added “She will just throw it back up if you force her to eat”.

The general sighed pinching the bridge of her throat in silent annoyance snapping a “Fine” at Lexa and turning away from the commander.

Marie sat on the floor Risha cuddled firmly against her chest. The wolf cub seemed to enjoy the attention but Lexa doubted that Marie would need to exert much more pressure to start hurting the small animal.

“Can’t I stay here?” the girl’s voice was small and wavering as she pleaded before they had stepped foot outside of the tent.

“You are the commander’s second” Anya reminded sharply and also Lexa would have liked to give her the choice to remain back she knew that Anya was right and Marie was expected to be with both of them.

The girl inhaled deeply trying to straighten her spine before she followed both women out of the tent. The members of Skykru who would enter the Mountain with them were already waiting for their arrival on the perimeter in front of the Ark. Anya noted with flaring annoyance how Pike also stood beside Markus Kane and Abby and Lexa’s immediately found Clarke among the small group staring ahead of them her blue eyes focused into the woods. The commander doubted Clarke would find returning any easier than she did and she wondered silently why the blonde leader was even here in the first place. But it was not her place to question Clarke on anything so she only inclined her head in greeting to Abby and Markus Kane.

Raven had been able to get four rovers functional again but Lexa had insisted that her people would be traveling with their horses also including two wagons which offered even more storage place. The commander wanted the Mountain closed and destroyed the next day. Marie would be riding with Anya for now and the girl had stayed back slightly petting Lexa’s horse to its obvious delight.

Gustus had stayed with Marie and looked over her mutely. The girl’s nerves were nearly palpable. Her breathing already slightly uneven and her eyes had a haunted look in them and she barely had said a word all morning. The burly man had no idea on how to actually comfort the girl so he simply stayed with her.

The ride to the Mountain was fast and quite. None of the warriors seemed in the mood for talking. It seemed as if the shadow of the Mountain had already reached them. Skykru drove behind the group of warriors in their rovers filling the silence with the constant humming of their metal vehicles. Marie had her eyes closed for most of the ride and her body pressed firmly against Anya’s tense frame behind herself.

The commander only shot her general and their second subtle glances from time to time but she also did not speak. Once they passed the stream which had always served as a natural border between Trikru territory and the Mountain Marie’s breathing seemed to get slightly raged and her grey eyes seemed to look at something far away.

The warriors all dismounted in nearly perfect sync once Lexa called them to a halt with a single raise of her hand. Anya assisted their second in getting down from the horse as the members from Skykru started to climb from their rovers.

Abby and Lexa had decided beforehand that they would move together from room to room determining what could be of use so that the commander would see for herself that they did not take more weapons than they already had in their possession.

Monty and Raven would go to the control centre of the Mountain trying to figure out which systems they would be able to take down for good. The mechanic also had various explosives slung over her shoulder stored in a backpack which would be enough to destroy all the entrances so that no one would be able to come back. Monty’s mother had remained behind at the Ark only after lengthy discussions and the reassurance that Charles was with her son.

The Mountain was much bigger from the inside than Lexa had anticipated and Abby agreed that searching every single quarter for something useful would take too long restraining their search to defined areas.

When they entered the dining hall they were assaulted by the musty smell from the food left on the plates that had started moulding weeks ago. Marie tried breathing through her mouse feeling bile rise in her throat silently noting that except for the moulding food the place looked that the inhabitants had just left all of a sudden and could be returning any second.

The lower levels of the Mountain stood completely under water that had flooded into the system from the damage Raven had done to the dam. Raven’s voice suddenly boomed through the speakers calling the commander to the control centre to “show her something”.

Lexa nodded to Anya to keep on going with Abby in her stead. But Lexa actually did not know for sure on where the control centre was located and was surprised when Clarke seemingly eager to do something offered to take her there. The anger had vanished from Clarke’s blue eyes for now being replaced by a silent kind of horror. Pike’s voice also carried over the speakers as he tried to convince Monty of something before the speakers turned dead again.

Anya had a reassuring hand on Marie’s shoulder the whole time guiding the girl closely to herself as they crossed several rooms shortly not seeing anything of value.

Anya swallowed harshly when she recognized the next room on the way to the medical facility. Marie also had recognized the room on a subconscious level and stood rooted to the spot, her eyes wide and unseeing and her breath coming in short sudden puffs of air. The hand on her shoulder which had felt reassuring before now felt suffocating and Marie did not recognize anymore to who it belonged.

When Anya tightened her fingers around the girl’s shoulders slightly meant as a grounding gesture it had the opposite effect. Marie violently shrugged out from under the hand on her shoulders her mind flashing back to the man that had dragged her into the room and pushed her onto a metal table. She opened her mouth to scream but no sound left her throat. She blindly scrambled away from the hands grabbing for her again until her back hit something solid and she slid down hugging her knees tightly to her body.

Anya felt completely helpless when Marie retreated even further from her. She remembered that Marie had been in a similar state when she woke after the Mountain and had been absolutely inconsolable until she had cried herself into an exhausted sleep.

“She is having a panic attack” Abby commented wanting to help. The woman tried approaching Marie herself but the girl’s reaction to the doctor was even more violent and the girl completely backed away into a corner whimpering pitifully as she did so.

“I can see that” Anya seethed through clenched teeth. Abby eased back away from Marie when it was clear that she could not reach out to her.

“I can administer a mild sedative from the medical facilities” Abby suggested knowing that they would shortly reach their destination.

But the general immediately shook her head crouching low in front of Marie trying to calm the girl without actually touching her just yet.

Abby wanted to lead the group further ahead to the medical facilities but with the commander still in the control centre and her general now otherwise occupied they would need to keep going without the surveillance they had agreed on. Markus held the woman back shaking his head intently. Their situation was tense enough as it was.

It did seem to take forever for Marie to regain some kind of focus and her breathing was still ragged. When her grey eyes connected with Anya’s again actually recognizing the woman she immediately flung herself at her burying her head into her neck trying to breath in her calming sent.

“SShh” Anya tried to sooth her having barely managed to keep her balance once Marie flung her arms around her “You are fine. No one will harm you again here, little star”. Feeling the girl still shaking in her arms and obviously crying Anya just kept her in her arms hiding her face from the horrendous place around them.

Anya had been so occupied with trying to reach out to Marie and calm her that she had not noticed that Lexa had returned with Clarke, Pike and Raven. The general spotted that the man suddenly had a busted lip bleeding slightly down his chin and Lexa was rubbing at a hand coincidentally.  She would ask her later what had prompted the commander to lash out at the man.

Lexa immediately went over to Anya placing a comforting hand on Marie’s back at seeing the girl in obvious distress. “What happened?” the commander asked her general lowly too low for the others to catch.

A panic attack” Anya said looking around her at the room shortly her eyes lingered for a second on the table they had strapped Marie to and drilled into her body for her bone marrow. Realization dawned on Lexa at the dark look crossing over Anya’s face and she nodded “We will not stay much longer”.

At the other side of the room Pike spoke loudly with Abby and Markus his voice incensed as he did so “You cannot mean to just destroy all this! We will be save here!”

To everyone’s surprise it was Clarke who cut his rant short a dangerous glint in her blue eyes “Yeah, moving into the place where thousands of their people have been held like cattle, hung from the ceiling to be bled dry and discarded like garbage. Brilliant idea!”

“The timer has already been set” Raven drawled seemingly bored with the discussion that had been going on for some time in the control room already.

“Then set it back” the man raged at the mechanic who did not even bate an eye at him leaning against the wall casually.

“Timer?” Abby asked confusion in her tone.

“Yeah” Raven said “The whole thing will go boom in three hours”

The chancellor gaped at the young woman. “You had wanted me to find a permanent solution, didn’t you?” Raven asked sceptically.

Abby nodded coming to her senses and urging the group on. Three hours were not long and they would need to hurry.

Sorry” Marie whispered to Lexa when the woman checked if she was alright her voice wavering and still crying.

Lexa shook her head her eyes soft “You do not have anything to apologize for”.

 

 

Chapter 90

Filing through the medical facilities of the Mountain was more distressing than Lexa had anticipated. Abby had quickly found a strange kind of cabinet filled with what looked like hundreds of sort of bags filled with blood.

The commander silently mused how many of her people had died just to build up this fast storage. She would have liked nothing better than to see all of the storage destroyed but Abby tried t argue with her that the blood could be able to save the lives of others and sadly those that had been robbed of this blood were most likely dead already.

Anya had been unable in her attempts to get Marie to let go of her even for a second. Every time she even slackened her hold on the girl’s body Marie just held on tighter again even going so far as whimpering when Anya had tried to loosen the girl’s fingers clinging to her coat. Lexa finally told her general to just let their charge be for now that she would probably let go when she was ready.

Clarke’s blue eyes had widened at the sight of all the blood bags the Mountain Men had stored in advance feeling her throat constrict painfully and clogging with bile.

Pike was still lowly rambling to everyone who would listen that blowing the Mountain up was a fast error on their account. Clarke actually went so far to take the man’s arms and forcefully lead him to the harvest room showing him all the now empty cages indicating what had been done here.

The commander had followed both of them subtly trying to make sure that nothing happened as she knew their time window was getting shorter with each second ticking away slowly. Lexa’s breath caught in her throat at the sight and she must have gasped audibly for Clarke turned around immediately spotting her.

“We would never be able to live here” Clarke said addressing Pike “And we have just left the prison of the Ark, do you really want to exchange a prison in the sky for a prison under the ground?”

The blonde’s words were filled with a kind of devotion that convinced the commander that Clarke would never stand by and watch her people move into the Mountain. But she would still rest easier once the Mountain had been destroyed for good and there was no chance of Skykru returning to it once she had left to Polis.

When Lexa did not return after a few minutes Anya followed them standing rooted on the spot in the entrance to the room. Although the smell of the room had changed slightly now that it had been standing unoccupied for a few weeks, Anya could not stop her mind from flashing back to being imprisoned here herself.

Marie felt Anya’s body stiffen in her tight embrace and she instantly knew that something was wrong. But Anya did not move to take a weapon to defend them so Marie cautiously turned her head to look around. Anya’s face looked stony and her brown eyes were widened, her jaw pressed together tightly.

“Anya?” Marie addressed her very lowly touching her fingers to the woman’s cheek cautiously. Anya’s brown eyes instantly snapped away from the cages looking down at the girl’s grey eyes. The general swallowed forcefully past the lump lodged into her throat and tightened her arms around the girl now more for the benefit of calming herself rather than Marie.

Raven’s voice coming from behind Anya made all of them turn “We should leave soon” the mechanic proclaimed “The explosion will go off in about thirty minutes. I don’t know how powerful it will be” she pointed Marie “She should be as far away as possible from the shock wave”.

The commander nodded to signal that they understood and told Anya “Go ahead with Marie”. The general nodded turned on the spot without another word and carried Marie out of the room in the direction of the elevator.

Anya felt her breaths coming easier with every step she took in the direction of the exit and she exhaled fully once stepped outside and breathed in the first bout of fresh air again smelling like the forest around them.

Outside she saw their warriors together with some of Skykru loading the things already brought outside into the rovers and some things onto the carts they had provided. The general directly took Marie to her horse hoisting the girl up in front of her and guiding the horse away from the Mountain to the stream that had always served as a natural border.

Marie also seemed to relax with every moment that passed and slowly the haunted look left her grey eyes. But it was already obvious that the emotional turmoil had exhausted the girl paired with the unrestful night they had.

“When will Lexa be back?” Marie suddenly asked after long moments of silence both just taking in the nature around them.

“Soon” Anya said as the time should nearly be over before the Mountain would explode.

“I wanna go home…” Marie said lowly her eyes downcast and her voice forlorn.

Anya tightened her arms around the girl letting her fingers glide through her hair “It is over, Marie. We will never return to the Mountain”.

The girl nodded with a heavy sigh a shiver running down her spine. Anya rubbed the girl’s back soothingly in silence waiting for the others to catch up with them.

A few moments later the earth suddenly seemed to shake under them and a loud series of explosion was heard. Anya instinctively put her hands over Marie’s ears to shield from the force still palpable to this distance from the Mountain. The general felt a silent kind of assurance settle in to her mind that the Mountain truly was destroyed now. The news of the final destruction of the place that had haunted their people for centuries was bound to appease some of the tension between the clans.

Once Lexa lead the warriors to the place where Anya and Marie waited the general guided her horse to walk next to Lexa’s to return to Arkadia.

Lexa’s ears still rang slightly with a high beeping sound and she was irritated. The boy here people had speared weeks ago for crossing the border to the Mountain had obviously fallen in love with one of the Mountain Man and had snuck into a rover and into the complex. Raven had detected his movements just a few minutes before the explosives were programmed and Monty had hurried inside with Clarke to retrieve the idiot boy. He had struggled against their grasps screaming bloody murder at both of them for “melting his love”. Lexa had wanted to step in as no one of her people would have dared to address her in such a way and thought that Clarke’s people should not be allowed to either but the tears in Clarke’s blue eyes had held her back.

The ride back from the Mountain seemed to take longer. Due to the carts laden with goods they had to travel slower.

“Does your head hurt?” Lexa checked with Marie just to be sure. The girl shook her head and yawned wildly she hoped they would arrive soon.

“You can rest” Anya assured their charge in a soft tone urging her to lean back and sit more comfortably.

“When will we return to Polis?” Marie asked but did lean back slightly her head lying on Anya’s shoulder.

“Abby wanted to check you over once again in a day or two and then we will travel back” Lexa answered.

Marie nodded with a relieved expression and finally closed her eyes letting herself be lulled to sleep by the rhythmic movements of the horse under them.

The general gently shook the girl in front of her awake when the carcase of the Ark already loomed over them. Marie blinked her eyes open surprised that she somehow had slept the whole way back. Lexa’s smirked at her good naturedly and offered her hands to help their charge from the horse. Marie’s legs felt slightly wobbly once they connected with the solid ground again and Lexa had to straighten the girl to keep her upright until her legs regained some feeling.

She smiled up at Lexa sheepishly “I thought I had gotten used to riding now” her voice sounded a bit pouty as if angered that her body still reacted strongly to the exertion.

The commander shook her head “Your body is still weakened. You will regain your strength”. But getting used to riding for longer distances would still probably take the girl some time and even though Lexa herself had grown up with horses and was used to riding her body still hurt after a day solely spent in the saddle. Marie just needed to build up more muscle and learn to cope with a certain level of pain on a daily basis. But she was still young and would learn with time.

A sudden commotion caught their attention. The Skykru had already started to unload the things they had gathered from the Mountain. Clarke was facing her mother her expression unyielding and her arms crossed over her chest “I will not stay here, Mum!”

The chancellor was balling her hands into fists at her side “You will not walk out there! There is a bounty on your head! You will not leave the safety of Arkadia!” her shouts were loud and everyone seemed to pause in what they were doing.

Markus obviously intent to delegate between them already stepped up to Abby lying a comforting hand on one of her arms.

“Then you will have to lock me in!” Clarke nearly spat at her mother turning on the spot and storming away in a huff. Lexa saw Bellamy hurrying behind the agitated blonde. She would have liked to offer her to accompany her to Polis where she would also be save under her protection but she doubted Clarke would be inclined to take her up on the offer or even listen to her at all. So she silently agreed with the chancellor that Clarke was at least save here.

“The Council will be meeting again tomorrow morning” Markus suddenly addressed Lexa shaking her from her thoughts. The commander inclined her head to the man and he once again invited her to attend the meeting. She accepted the invitation with another silent nod wondering silently why the Council wanted to have her attendance again.

“Marie?!” a voice suddenly shouted excitement evident in the high pitched quality of it.

Marie turned to the voice her eyes lightening up immediately as she recognized the owner. Anya had put a hand on her dagger to protect their second but let it fall away again as she watched a girl slightly taller than Marie brown hair pulled up into a ponytail run towards them. A woman who had the same hair colour and identical facial structure hurried behind the child probably the girl’s mother.

“Oh, my god, Maura!” Marie exclaimed embracing the girl immediately once they stood next to each other “I can’t believe it, you’re here!” The girl’s voice was abuzz and a huge smile was plastered on her face. It was obvious the girl’s knew each other well.

The woman who had hurried behind Maura finally caught up with her daughter and she looked slightly nervous faced with the Trikru general’s unwavering calm façade. “I apologize for my daughter just rushing here” the woman tried to apologize.

Lexa who had finished speaking with Markus had also turned. The commander noted how all that had previously watched the exchange between Clarke and her mother had now turned their attention to them. Some of the Skykru guards seemed to freeze up as if afraid that a single wrong movement could now cause the situation to shift. Lexa kept her face neutral and politely waved the woman’s apology aside.

The relieve flitting over the woman’s features was palpable and she seemed to relax remembering her manners she quickly introduced herself and her daughter “I am Lily Montgomery and this is Maura, my daughter. We are also from Farm Station. I would like to thank you officially for the assistance of your people to bring us here”.

The commander nodded her expression still unreadable but she was internally surprised to hear someone from Skykru actually thanking her for their efforts.

“I was a teacher on the Ark for the younger kids” Lily explained to fill the silence that had settled between them unsure if her addressing the commander would be seen as some kind of affront. “And these two were real troublemakers together” the woman’s face took on a melancholic smile as she remembered a time when Marie had still been in her lessons.

“What did you teach them?” Lexa asked genuinely interested.

Marie and Maura seemed completely engrossed in their conversation both giggling from time to time at something the other had said. Anya still stood slightly behind Marie listening loosely to what the girl’s said to each other. She was both relieved and perplexed to see the girl acting so carefree. Marie nudged the other girl playfully both now giggling together over what must have been a joke the general did not understand. The longer the girl’s talked with each the less she seemed to understand as Marie and Maura used phrases she had no incline to more often.

“Very basic things” Lily answered and elaborated at seeing honest interest on the young leaders face “The kids I taught used to be between four and ten years old. I would teach them how to read and write, basic maths, like mostly the numbers really. Telling time, colours and a basic physical education”.

The commander nodded along as the woman explained what her purpose had been. Her people usually did not receive any kind of basic tutelage safe for how to survive. She hoped that she would be able to implement a system similar to Skykru’s at least in Polis in the foreseeable future.

“Do you have some kind of schools?” Lily asked trying to learn something of the new culture around them aside from the violence they had already been faced with.

The commander shook her head “Not yet, no. It is hard to tell people that their children should learn how to read when they do not need the skill to survive”. But she knew that for her people to ever evolve into a better peaceful future they needed more knowledge first. She had already ran the idea past Titus a few times but the flamekeeper was steadfast in his opinion that the normal citizens simply did not have a need for such useless skills.

The other woman seemed to be lost for words and Maura stepping up to her mother diverted her attention. Lily gave her daughter a soft smile caressing her cheek lovingly for a moment before she turned back towards the commander “Dinner will be served in the communal hall now. I am sure you and your people would be welcomed to join us”.

Markus had already offered the same invitation to her only minutes ago but she had just declined her head. Marie was no also standing next to Lily and the woman shortly embraced the girl repeating the gesture of caressing the girl’s cheek. Marie’s grey eyes turned to Lexa the pleading to accept the invitation evident in them so Lexa just mutely nodded her consent although she would have preferred to leave the perimeter of the Ark. She mutely decided that Marie’s reacting blinding smile was worth her own discomfort for now.

Anya was also aware of all the eyes that seemed to be permanently glued to them now since Maura and her mother had started to speak with them. The general wondered how Marie did not seemed affected by all the prying eyes at all or if the girl truly did not notice the heavy tension.

Marie was obviously just happy to be reunited with her friend it seemed. The girls were happily talking with each other all the way to the communal hall while Lexa flanked by Gustus and Anya accompanied by Lily who seemed slightly unsettled by Gustus’ presence all followed silent.

Their entrance to the communal hall pulled a sudden stop to the chatter that had been resonating through the halls. Only Marie and Maura continued to talk undisturbed.

Markus was the one to gather himself back together first and instantly stood from his place to welcome the commander. Lexa spotted Clarke sitting together with Bellamy and Raven at a table a sullen expression on her face. Her blue eyes had also turned to them just like everyone else’s and the commander noted the surprise flitting over them.

Marie and Maura immediately went over to the serving counter used to the processes of the Ark’s daily life.

Markus had a table quickly cleared to them against Lexa’s claims that such a thing was completely unnecessary.

Marie turned to the adults still behind them with an exited smile on her face “There is blue jelly”. Lily shook her head with an amused smile pulling at her lips while Gustus, Anya and Lexa all wondered what that was supposed to mean.

Jelly turned out to be a strange looking substance that wobbled when the box it was in was shook. It was obvious the girl’s had their fun with it.

Anya eyed the different foods served at the serving counter distrustfully. She barely recognized anything and wondered what it even was they were eating. Gustus did not look any better and just accepted a piece of what must be some kind of bread declining everything else.

Marie excitedly tried to explain to Anya and Lexa what was offered at the serving counter, warning them on what she did not like at all and pointing out here favourites. Jelly obviously was one of the things she absolutely liked best.

Lexa eyed the jelly the girl got handed over with a raised brow. She doubted she had ever seen food with such a strange colour and texture. It also seemed to smell strongly but Lexa was unable to put a name to the strangely sweet smell.

Under Marie’s constant prompting and not wanting to antagonize all the Skykru watching them both Anya and Lexa accepted a lot more from the strange food than they would have without the girl with them.

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

Chapter 10: Chapter 91 - 100

Chapter Text

Chapter 91

While they ate Marie and Maura continued talking non-stop. Anya wondered how the girls even managed to eat anything with the speed they had while talking. The general had cautiously tried some of the strange food Skykru had given to them and she had been hard pressed to spit the things out again. They tasted completely wrong and their textures were off as well, she even had no idea what food it should have resembled. The commander did not seem to fare any better as she put down her fork unobtrusively after taking a few bites at least trying most of the things.

Marie recounted roughly all that had happened since the guard had forced her into the dropship and they had fallen to earth.

Lexa continued to politely talk with Lily subtly asking the woman details about how the Ark was run. The woman seemed willing enough to answer the questions and asked very little in return, but it was still obvious that she did not share the negative opinion a huge part of Skykru had about the grounders.

Anya mostly listened to Marie’s retelling of her adventures on the earth. It was obvious with every word that the girl cared as deeply for herself and Lexa as they did for her and Anya was glad to note that nothing within the girl’s words hinted at a desire to return to Skykru. She seemed a little sad that they would leave to Polis in the next days and that she would not see Maura any longer then but there seemed to be no doubt in the girl’s mind that she would return to Polis and stay there.

When Marie had finished the main meal she switched over to the jelly trying to offer some to Lexa but the commander immediately shook her head to decline. Marie obviously still remembered the scene she had created in Polis and dropped her offer immediately turning her attention to Anya.

Lexa had an amused smirk pulling at her lips as their charge scooped up a bit of the strange blue things holding the spoon in Anya’s direction “It is really yummy” Marie tried to convince Anya to try the jelly. The general rolled her eyes and levelled a glare at the girl that made her pull the spoon away with a pout. On the last instance she even made to offer Gustus some but the burly man immediately said “Don’t even think about it” before Marie could make the actual offer.

Maura easily rescued Marie’s mood by smirking and saying “More for us!” and laughed while taking a spoon for herself and starting her own portion. Marie laughed at the theatrical way and just ate her own portion.

The commander asked Lily what this thing actually was made of and was astounded to hear that the woman did not know at all. All she had to offer was that most of the things were artificially produced somehow and that Farm Station had produced the only real grown food from which most had been processed.

The girl was in the process of telling Maura how she had met Lexa and that she had to decide if she was to live or be killed.

The brunette girl turned her eyes away from Marie and looked directly at the commander “So you let her stay?”

Lexa was slightly surprised that the girl now included her in their conversation but she nodded. She was even more complexed by the girl’s next words “Thank you for letting her live”.

Lexa was spared from giving an answer as Maura immediately turned her focus back to Marie.

“She seems to have had a few adventures on earth” Lily mused also listening to Marie’s tale now.

The commander nodded silently. She knew that most people tented to exaggerate what had actually happened when they retold something but strikingly Marie did not, quite the contrary actually as Anya thought. The girl left out huge parts of where she had been in actual danger and retold the meeting with the pauna as nothing more than a little adventure.

When Marie had finally finished telling her own story, completely leaving out what had happened at the Mountain, Maura tried to tell what had happened to them.

But her mother interrupted the girl “It is late already, sweetie. Maybe you can talk more tomorrow”.

Both Lexa and Anya noted how the woman had formulated her words vaguely obviously aware that they would have the final say over where Marie would be tomorrow.

Maura turned her best innocent eyes on her mother pleading to be allowed to stay out a little longer but Lily resolutely declined. The woman knew that the commander and general probably wanted to return to their tents and it was obvious they had not wanted to leave Marie in the Ark on her own.

Marie did not even try to ask to stay longer with Maura and seemed even eager to leave the Ark.

During their time in the communal hall Lexa had silently observed that seeing the commander together with a mother and girl from Skykru seemed to have eased some tension and more people looked relaxed over time.

The way Marie had been completely carefree in Maura’s company was gratification enough to her already.

Nevertheless all three of them seemed to breathe easier again once they finally stepped foot out of the Ark. Marie was happy to see Risha already waiting for her in their tent, the little wolf cub wagging its tail at her human immediately in greeting and licking her fingers as they came in reach.

“When do we go back to Polis?” Marie asked once she had settled on the ground her back to one of the posts of the tent Risha cuddled onto her lap.

Lexa discarded her red sash and stripped out of the armour she had worn for the day before she answered “Soon. But we will attend a Council meeting of Skykru tomorrow morning and Abby wanted to look you over before we leave”.

Marie nodded in understanding and started to yaw, the exhaustion of the day catching up with her.

“Go to bed” Anya commanded stripping out of her armour as well.

The girl immediately stripped down as well changing into one of Lexa’s tops she had worn the night before. “You won’t leave, will you?” Marie asked addressing both of them hesitating to lie down.

“We will be here” Lexa reassured the girl her eyes soft and calm.

It was obvious Marie was still hesitant to lie down and Anya stepped over to their charge squeezing her shoulders in a soothing gesture. “You are save here, Marie” the general tried to quell the girl’s obvious fears “And we will keep watch over you”.

The girl nodded with a heavy swallow and finally let herself sink down into the furs. Risha immediately climbing up her body settling down over her chest. Marie did not know why, but she was afraid to close her eyes. She feared that once she did she would wake up back in Mount Weather.

Lexa and Anya remained up for some more time speaking softly to each other. Both of them kept an eye on the girl turning around in the furs obviously unable to fall asleep.

“What did you say to Clarke a few days ago?” Lexa wondered remembering the change in Clarke’s attitude and not having had the chance to bring it up before now.

Anya rolled her eyes subtly “You may be alright with the girl trampling all over you out of a bout of unjustified guilt and honour, but I am not. I merely tried to set her straight somewhat”.

The commander smirked slightly shaking her head in fondness for her previous mentor “Whatever you said seems to have had some impact” she paused and looked directly into Anya’s brown eyes “So thank you”.

“I will always have your back, Lexa” the general reassured her eyes honest and determined.

Lexa gave her a smile in response looking over to Marie at the girl still tossing and turning around “We should join her. Or I doubt she’ll ever sleep tonight”.

Anya nodded although Lexa noted on the worry flitting through the general’s eyes. “She will be alright eventually” Lexa said reassuring Anya just like herself.

The older woman nodded again with a heavy sigh when Lexa turned a probing green eyed stare on her “Are you?” the commander asked her tone soft. Lexa had always respected the older woman’s boundaries usually never speaking about her feelings at all but somehow with Marie in the picture now even their relationship seemed to have been altered.

Anya met Lexa’s stare unwaveringly “The Mountain is destroyed” was all she was willing to say. Going back there had affected her as well but she knew that the memories would fade eventually.

When they finally joined Marie in their furs it was obvious from the girl’s exhausted expression that she had not slept at all until now. Risha had hopped down from the bed long ago when Marie did not stop to toss and turn jostling the small animal with every movement.

Both of them settled closer to Marie then they normally did but the girl smiled slightly at both of them settling down more relaxed now in both of their comforting presences.

The night itself was exhausting to all of them. Marie immediately woke up once she left the comforting warmth of the embrace that had lulled her back to sleep. So that all three of them were woken multiple times through the night finding it harder to get Marie back to sleep with every time she woke.

Anya’s mood in the morning was a versatile mixture between exhaustion and clear worry that Marie had been this strongly affected by going back to the Mountain.

Lexa felt a headache probing at her temples from the exhaustion and Marie herself seemed drawn and tense.

The commander would have liked nothing better than to call her warriors to dismantle their make-shift camp and leave to Polis right now, but she had agreed to speak to the Council once more. She hoped the meeting would be quick but she had a foreboding that it would not.

Lexa had a bath prepared for Marie to help soothe the girl. She hovered near when Marie stripped in case the girl would falter. The commander moved to help Marie get into the large tub. Her eyes narrowed slightly when they fell to the girl’s hip. The circular wounds from the Mountain had still been easily visible the last time she had seen the girl undressed and now they were barely visible anymore having faded into light scars. But the scars looked way older than they were completely smooth against her skin. “Does your hip still hurt?” she asked the girl offering a hand for Marie to balance herself.

The girl wiggled around slightly under the water as if testing her body and scrunched her face up in thought. They had been riding for most of the day yesterday but her hip truly felt fine. When she told so to Lexa worry took over the commander’s features.

Marie closed her eyes in the warm water soothed by the calming scent of the herbs Lexa had put into the water. She heard Lexa and Anya talking with each other in another part of the tent but she did not listen in too comfortable in the water.

“We will leave after the Council meeting” Lexa proclaimed to Anya. The older woman watched slightly confused as Lexa strode out of the tent ordering the warriors to start dismantling their camp immediately ready to leave once the meeting finished.

“Had Abby not wanted to look Marie over once again?” Anya asked once Lexa returned to the tent. The commander nodded but shook her head “The wounds from the Mountain are also gone from her skin, completely. There are only small scars left which look to be years old”.

The worry Lexa felt was reflected in Anya’s eyes “So not just her head has healed but an old injurie as well…” the woman wondered out loud. The commander nodded Abby had thus far as far as she could tell really only looked at Marie’s head and not deeply at the rest of the girl’s body and she was determined to keep it that way. Healing in such a way was not normal by any logical reason and keeping it hidden felt more important than ever.

Anya called Marie out of the bath soon finding the girl nearly asleep in the warm water. It was obvious that Anya’s patience was rather thin this day and she tugged at Marie’s hair with slightly more force than necessary while redoing the girl’s braids and prompting a hiss from Marie every now and then trying to move away. Anya snapped at the girl to sit still having to redo part of a braid that had fallen from her grip when Marie moved away.

“You are hurting me” Marie said in a whiny tone her grey eyes tired.

“Then sit still!” Anya snapped back her patience nearly snapping.

Lexa intervened by pushing a cup of strong tea into Anya’s hands swatting the general’s hands away from Marie’s head and taking over Marie’s hair for the older woman. The commander’s fingers were gentler on Marie’s hair and she quickly finished the girl’s braid tying them off with thin strips of leather. 

Gustus soon announced Markus Kane bidding entrance into the commander’s tent and Lexa called out to let the man pass.

Markus nodded his head in greeting “The Council meeting will start soon” the man said his eyes halting slightly on Marie as a frown took over his features noting the exhausted expression on the girl’s pale face.

The commander stood from her throne and motioned Markus to proceed them. Marie slipped her coat on and followed Lexa and Anya out of the tent her feet slightly trudging.

Activity around the Ark was still slow as most people still seemed to be asleep. Their footsteps echoed loudly through the metal halls of the Ark and the Council was already waiting for them.

The commander noted that Charles Pike seemed to be a new extension of the Council but she had already spoken with the rest of the adults gathered in the small room.

They had left a chair empty for her at the foot of the table and Lexa strode over to it sitting down gracefully red sash flowing from her shoulder.

Pike’s eyes narrowed as the man spotted Marie walking in hidden slightly behind the commander’s bigger body. “This is a council meeting” the man exclaimed with a testing tone to his voice “And no place for a child!”

Lexa met the man’s dark eyes calmly “As my second Marie is privy to all meetings” was all she said her tone ringed with finality and Markus quickly cut in before Pike could say anything more.

“Commander” he addressed her formally “Thank you for your attendance”.

The man asked if they would be able to open trade routes with the other clans knowing that they would probably need the help of the clans before they would be able to sustain themselves.

“I will not force any clan to trade with you” the commander answered calmly “But you may speak in front of the ambassadors. They will decide if their clans want to open trade negotiations with Skykru”.

Markus nodded “When will that be possible?”

“A small delegation may travel with me back to Polis” Lexa offered “That way you should be able to travel back to your settlement before winter has hit fully”.

The rest of the meeting mostly did not concern her people but Abby thanked her for leaving warriors behind to teach them on how to track game and hunt with a bow and sending a wagon laden with furs they would direly need.

Abby already had called an end to the meeting when Pike spoke up “What about the farming land?”

The chancellor immediately shook her head but the commander looked at the dark skinned man probingly waiting for him to speak.

“The land around Arkadia is not highly versatile” Pike declared “We need more land to lay out fields”.

“Skykru has already been given more than enough ground” the commander answered levelling the man with a glare.

“We are owed more than that” the man shot back unmoved by her glare.

“You are owed?” the commander questioned with a raised brow “Skykru has been allowed to keep the part of my land you crashed on and you will make do with that!”

She stood from her chair her eyes burning in their intensity as she stared at the man. Markus tried to get Charles to keep silent but Lexa simply strode from the room unwilling to listen to the man’s rambling.

Internally she was seething, Skykru had landed in their land and she been gracious in allowing them to stay and still they were calling for more!

Marie and Anya followed the commander out of the room. The girl promptly crashed into Lexa’s back. The commander stood rooted just a few steps from the door Clarke leaning against the wall in front of her.

Anya quickly caught Marie stumbling back from the impact before she could fall over.

“Clarke” Lexa acknowledged the other woman with guarded eyes. It looked as if Clarke had been waiting in the hall for some time now.

Clarke seemed unsure of herself her blue eyes uncertain as she said her voice barely above a whisper “You are leaving”

The commander nodded a furrow on her brow not unsure of why Clarke approached her in the first place.

She watched the blonde woman take a deep breath as if gathering her strength before she asked voice now slightly louder and stronger “The offer you made before the …” Clarke’s voice halted and a flash of emotion passed over her eyes, she swallowed again and continued “ … Mountain, is that still available?”

Clarke’s expression was vulnerable as she finished.

Lexa only blinked at the blonde for a moment completely caught off guard by the request.

“To come to Polis?” the blonde added interpreting Lexa’s silence as confusion.

The commander nodded her eyes unreadable to Clarke “You will always be welcome in the capitol, Clarke”.

The blonde seemed to let go of a relieved breath and nodded her eyes grateful “When do you leave?”

The commander wanted to say “now” but altered it to “When you are packed”.

The blonde smirked slightly pointing to a backpack at her feet “Already done”.

“You will not leave Arkadia!” Abby suddenly exclaimed loudly from behind them startling Marie who had not heard the woman leave the meeting room behind them.

“Mom” Clarke sighed rolling her eyes and crossing her arms over her chest jutting her chin out defiantly “I will not stay either”.

“It is not save outside for you” Abby nearly pleaded.

“She will be save under my protection” the commander offered turning to the chancellor.

The woman huffed and looked away from Lexa’s intense eyes her gaze landed onto Marie “We can do the last check-up now then”.

The commander shook her head “That won’t be necessary”.

The doctor wanted to argue confused why the commander had changed her mind but Lexa just inclined her head and turned around leaving the woman standing in the hall.

 

Chapter 92

Anya was slightly confused at Clarke’s request to join their group to Polis. But she thought it would be better so that they would at least know where Clarke was, undoubtedly Lexa would have send out scouts to look for her immediately had Clarke just vanished into the wilderness again. She would still keep an eye on the blonde woman not entirely sure they should be trusting her not to try something stupid. The rage seemed to have left her blue eyes for the most part but Anya was not fooled into believing the girl had forgiven already what had happened between her and Lexa.

Outside the sun had now risen basking the land in the golden light of another morning and the air was still crisp as the sun had already lost most of its power as autumn started to change into early winter.

Marie looked around once they stepped outside hoping to see Maura before they would start their travel. She was slightly sad to leave her friend behind not knowing when or if they would see each other again.

With a smile enlightening her face Marie did spot Maura together with her mother, she turned to Lexa asking if she could say goodbye quickly. The commander nodded halting in her step to watch Marie hurry over waving at Lily and her daughter.

She sent Anya to organize a horse for Clarke and the blonde followed the general immediately seemingly not wanting to stay alone with the commander. Lexa mutely wondered what had motivated Clarke to ask to come to Polis as she had been convinced the blonde would never want to have anything to do with her anymore. Hope started to bloom in her chest unbidden that whatever had started to grow between them before the Mountain might not have been lost completely, but she ruthlessly tried to quell the hope turning her attention back to Marie. Giving into thoughts like that was dangerous for her, the coalition was standing on wobbly feet and she would need to remain focused solely on her people.

The commander was surprised when Lily came over to her, the woman’s expression unsure as she said “I know that it is probably not my place to address you, commander”. Her tone and glancing back at her daughter and Marie minutely already told her that the woman wanted to address a personal matter.

Lexa silently waited for the woman to continue her eyes shortly flitting over to Marie making sure the girl was alright and when her gaze returned to Lily there was a slight smile on the woman’s face.

“I just wanted to ask you to look after her” Lily said her voice grave looking straight into the commander’s green eyes “She has been through so much already and I can tell you care deeply for her”.

Lexa met her gaze with a raised brow wondering what the woman implied.

“You look at her the same way every mother looks at their children” Lily simply added with a knowing look in her brown eyes.

Lexa’s eyes widened slightly, was she really looking at Marie like a mother would?

“Marie has already lost her parents once and she is such a sweet child” Lily continued oblivious to Lexa’s inner turmoil her brown eyes softening when she looked over to Marie and her own daughter “I know that Marie does not wish to stay here or I would have offered to take her, so please keep her save and …” she hesitated for a moment before she added “… and love her”.

Lexa was lost for words for a moment and remained short of an answer as Marie had finished her goodbyes with Maura and both girl had come over to them.

Lily shortly enveloped Marie into a strong hug and as she let go she gently swiped a strand of hair that had somehow gotten loose from a braid away from the girl’s face. The woman smiled almost sadly at Marie “Be save, Marie and come and visit when you can, will you?” The girl nodded tightening her own arms around Lily for a moment and smiled up at the woman.

“Come” Lexa addressed Marie nodding once to Lily and turning around. If they did not leave soon they would not reach TonDC before nightfall.

Marie followed Lexa obediently although it was obvious that she was not happy to leave anymore. Lexa watched the girl’s shoulders drop dejectedly but she had no idea how to offer her any comfort. Her mind still was occupied with processing what Lily had said to her. Did she really love the girl like a mother would? But she immediately shook her head, of course she did, she just had no idea when she had started to feel that way.

“Love is weakness” echoed through her mind spoken by Titus’ voice and that to be a commander was to be alone. Lexa swallowed her throat suddenly tightening because she truly loved the girl and she had already been weak for her, crippled nearly by the intensity of the grief she had felt when she had turned the switch. Fear settled into her veins at the thought of losing the girl and she swallowed past the lump lodged into her throat forcefully, Anya and she would never be able to guarantee that nothing would happen to Marie but she had no doubt in mind that both of them would die trying to protect her if necessary.

The camp was already dismantled when they left the perimeter of the Ark but not everything had been stored away yet. Judging from the jostling activity Lexa judged they would be settled to leave soon.

Markus hurried behind them wanting to know if it would be alright for the Skykru delegation to arrive later on their own in Polis using a rover to travel there as they obviously would not be able to organize the small delegation in such a short notice. The commander nodded her consent calculating in her head that they would reach TonDC by nightfall, rest there for the night and continue to Polis at first light. If they travelled without disturbances and without break they might be able to reach Polis slightly into the next night. She ordered them to arrive in five days from now, giving herself enough time to travel back to Polis and to notify the ambassadors of Skykru’s impeding arrival.

The commander joined Anya and Clarke standing with the horses followed by Marie trudging behind her silently obviously still upset.

The general and Clarke were caught up in an argument. The blonde leader was steadfast in her opinion that she would be able to ride on her own.

“You will not be able to keep up” Lexa said voice neutral meeting Clarke’s gaze only fleetingly. Her own black horse came over to them and immediately nudged Marie’s shoulder neighing at the girl in greeting. The commander watched her horse’s antics with a smirk flitting over her face minutely and thought that her own horse obviously already was completely enamoured with their second and had completely ignored Lexa’s presence.

“I will manage” Clarke answered through clenched teeth. She was too stubborn to admit that she had no experience in riding but she doubted it would be really hard, what could be so complicated about simply sitting on a horse anyway?

Anya rolled her eyes at the young woman’s stubbornness “We should just let her try now, so that she sees she’s wrong”. Anya had deliberately switched into their mother tongue to solely address Lexa. The commander raised a brow at her former mentor but a glance at Clarke told her that the woman would probably not be persuaded any other way. Clarke was nothing if not stubborn to the core. So she gave her former mentor a subtle nod but her attention was called to Gustus who approached them.

The burly man had Risha in his hands by the excess fur in her neck. No cart would travel with them this time so the wolf cub needed to be transported on the horses as well. The cub was growling at the gruff handling but was unable to bite the hand holding it.

Marie stopped petting the black mare and immediately took Risha from Gustus settling the cub more comfortably in her arms and the growling ceased at once. Lexa’s horse sniffed at the cub in interest laying back her ears at the smell of a predator.

Anya hoisted Clarke up on her own horse trusting the mount to accept the stranger on its back without protest.

Lexa was torn between watching Clarke and how her own horse reacted to Risha. Marie did not seem to notice how the horse became more nervous.

Clarke held herself on the horse rigidly prompting the horse to continue shifting underneath her. Anya led her horse by the reigns and gave it a nudge to urge it into a fast trot. Clarke yelped in surprise and frantically held onto the saddle. The hazelnut horse did not take well to the unmoving weight on its back and started to capriole to get rid of it. Clarke had been completely unprepared for the sudden violent movements and promptly fell from the horse back with another yelp.

The blonde glared up at the horse who had turned back around after unseating its rider. She stood up brushing some dirt from her clothes as she did so.

Anya had a knowing smirk on her face when she joined Clarke and petted the flank of her horse. The general knew that all their horses would have reacted similarly to such an inexperienced rider. The terrain was covered by soft grass and her horse had not run really fast so the blonde would not have hurt herself seriously.

Clarke glared at her and huffed when Anya simply met her angry gaze completely unfazed. “Alright” she conceded “I thought riding would have been easy”.

The general rolled her eyes at the childish tone but nodded “You will learn to ride later”.

Gustus still stood next to Lexa and Marie and the commander was trying to calm her horse. The guard said “I have already tried showing the cub to my own horse but the cub spooked her off”.

“Can’t Risha run on her own?” Marie interjected keeping the cub close to her chest and scratching the cub’s head.

Lexa shook her head “The way is too long and we will travel fast. When Risha is grown she can but not now as a cub”. But she internally doubted that any of their horses would accept a grown wolf better than they did with the cub now.

Anya led her own horse back towards the commander but the hazelnut mount immediately started to balk when it caught the scent of Risha. Lexa motioned her general to leave them and it seemed that her own horse would have to accept the cub or they would not be able to bring it with them at all.

No matter how much Lexa tried to calm her horse it started to want to flee every time Marie came closer with Risha again. The commander told Marie to wait a slight distance away from her horse and went to retrieve a shawl to block the horse’s sight in the hopes of getting it used to the scent at first.

But as soon as Lexa had turned her back and quickly strode away Marie stepped up to the commander’s horse again. She had taken Risha into her hands now and held the cub directly in front of the horse’s nose. The mare sniffed at the cub again flicking her ears around as if looking out for danger.

Marie let go of Risha with one hand and scratched at the horse’s nose with a gentle smile. The commander’s horse huffed out a big breath and surpassed the cub butting its head against Marie’s shoulder emitting a friendly neigh.

The girl beamed up at the horse “You’re such a good girl” she cooed petting the horse. Risha squirmed in her hand wanting to get some attention as well. The horse recoiled slightly when Marie pulled the cub back against her chest but returned to be petted some more only a moment later.

Anya had helped Clarke onto her own horse again a slight distance away and saw Lexa leaving from the corner of her eye. Her heart gave a jolt when she noticed Marie approaching the black mare again with Risha outstretched in her hands. She cursed under her breath at the girl’s recklessness hurrying over to their charge with quick strides.

She was perplexed to find the commander’s horse calm now seemingly accepting the cub in the girl’s arm now that Marie petted the horse again.

Marie looked startled at her fast approach and her grey eyes widened slightly when she noticed how angry Anya looked.

Didn’t Lexa tell you to wait for her?” Anya addressed the girl her tone sharp and her brown eyes blazing.

Marie opened and closed her mouth without a word coming out biting at her lips with a guilty expression on her face but she was saved from giving an actual answer when Anya’s horse started to make its discontent known at having Clarke on its back again.

Lexa levelled the girl with a clearly displeased glare at finding her orders so blatantly ignored. Internally she was impressed that their charge had managed on her own to get the horse to accept the cub but she was well aware how dangerous the situation could have been if Marie had failed.

Marie let her shoulders drop and stared at the grass at her feet downtrodden again. Lexa sighed under her breath and handed the shawl over to Marie.

The girl looked at the shawl with a puzzled expression unsure what to do with it so Lexa took it from her again wrapping the long piece of cloth around the girl’s body to form a sling of sorts in which Risha could be placed securely.

The camp had been completely dismantled and the warriors who would travel with them were ready to depart and leave the Ark behind. Lexa hoisted Marie up in front of the saddle of her black horse and mounted behind the girl signalling to the others that they would leave now.

Marie turned back slightly in front of Lexa looking back at the Ark looming behind them feeling her throat constrict almost painfully at watching the metal carcass leave her view as they reached the treeline.

Lexa silently watched their charge sensing her bad mood clearly while Anya rode slightly behind her with Clarke sitting behind her in the saddle.

Risha squirmed in the restraint of the shawl and Marie rearranged the piece of cloth in a way that Risha could peek her head out. The girl let her finger glide through the soft fur and felt Lexa tightening her arms around her.

They travelled mostly in silence as Lexa wanted to cover as much ground as possible urging them into a fast pace.  Fortunately it was not raining anymore but the wind still had an icy quality to it and shortly after they started their travels Marie leaned back in the saddle to get closer to Lexa’s warm body.

Are we staying long in TonDC?” Marie asked after a few minutes of silence looking up at Lexa slightly. Risha had calmed down and the cub seemed to sleep soundly now.

No” Lexa answered “We will continue to Polis as soon as possible”.

Marie nodded turning her eyes back on their surroundings and silence settled over them once more the constant sounds of the horses’ hooves accompanying them.

Anya felt Clarke holding tightly onto her and she already thought that the blonde girl’s fingers were bound to leave slight bruises on her hips with the way she clung to her. It was obvious that the Skygirl felt completely uncomfortable on a horse and seemed afraid to fall down again. The general could see from the corner of her eyes how Clarke would keep on looking at the commander time and again. She was slightly surprised that Clarke even stayed silent as most of Skykru seemed to feel uncomfortable to stay in silence for too long.

It took them most the day to finally reach TonDC and uncharacteristically for Marie the girl had not fallen asleep at all through the travels and stayed silent for most of the way.

The citizens of TonDC welcomed the commander and her entourage warmly. Clarke was surprised to see the state TonDC was in as most of the village had already been rebuilt. When Anya offered her a hand down from the horse her blue eyes were wide as she looked around. Anya noted how Clarke’s legs seemed unsteady under her and she internally pitied the girl for the discomfort she was sure to feel once they continued to Polis.

“Our people are strong” Anya commented on Clarke’s obvious surprise “We will endure and thrive again”.

The younger blonde simply nodded but did not say anything in response.

Lexa was welcomed by Indra as the warriors of their entourage already started to unpack some of the horses and raise a make-shift camp for the night. TonDC was still too small to offer housing to all of them and the nights were too cold already to sleep unprotected from the elements.

Marie had remained with Lexa’s horse scratching its nose softly with a smile on her face when Risha started to squirm again having felt that they had finally dismounted. A young man approached Marie offering her some innards to feed to her cub and the girl immediately thanked the man who was obviously a hunter for the village.

Lexa and Anya both were occupied with overseeing the work at the camp while Indra gave an update to her commander regarding the status of TonDC and what they had in store. The chief was sure her village would survive the winter no matter how harsh it may be.

Clarke had watched how a grounder handed Marie some bloody innards and how the girl proceeded to feed them to her cub. She looked around the village and was astonished to spot a few children playing a game of tag on the street. She had heard people whispering the title she had been given “the commander of death”. She had thought she would breathe easier outside of the confines of the Ark but seeing these people watch her with a mixture of awed gratitude and tentative welcome proved harder than watching her former friends.

She went over to Marie and the commander’s black steed immediately neighed in her direction its ears flat against its head. Marie had finished feeding Risha the innards and the cub had left in the direction of the tree line, the girl carefully petted the horse’s nose calming the animal.

Marie silently looked up at Clarke wondering what the older girl would want from her periphery she could see Anya also watching them carefully. Clarke had a lost look on her face and seemed not to know what to do at the moment.

“Where is home for you?” Clarke suddenly asked almost startling Marie with the out of the blue question.

Marie slightly cocked her head at the older girl narrowing her eyes as she did so and her eyes flitted over to Anya and next to Lexa before she said “It is not a place. It is where Anya and Lexa are”.

 

Chapter 93

It was almost dark when the make-shift camp was finally finished. Anya had ushered Marie over to the communal fire pit to get a portion of a freshly roasted boar. The girl was worried that Risha would not return in time before they would leave again.

“When will we continue to Polis?” Marie asked between some bites. Clarke sat somewhere next to Anya feeling utterly uncomfortable under all the scrutinizing gazes.

“We will rest a day” Lexa explained from her spot next to Marie her voice even and her face blank. She had miscalculated how many horses would be able to provide and the animals needed the rest as she had pushed them to travel faster than necessary through the day. It irked her that they would be delayed for another day but it was no use to push their mounts even more. The commander already thought about finally offering Marie the kill marks she had asked for weeks ago. TonDC would do as a location for the ceremony as well, receiving the very first kill mark was always special.

She could see that the girl was tired out from the long journey. Their charge would be unprepared for the harsh pain of the first mark and she judged that some tiredness to numb the pain could do no harm.

Marie seemed relieved with the answer knowing that Risha would likely return either in the night or sometime in the morning. Even though they had not stopped at all through the day she was not feeling particularly hungry and just nibbled at the meat without eating much at all. She had no idea why she was feeling sort of down, she should be happy with the prospect of returning to Polis but for some reason she wasn’t.

Lexa distracted her from her thoughts standing up from the log she had sat on in one elegant fluid motion. The commander let her eyes travel over those gathered around the fire pit. She felt Anya’s brown eyes on her and Clarke shortly glanced up at her as well.

The commander addressed Indra lowly “I will require a ceremonial knife”. The chief raised her brow in question but nodded and turned around leaving the fire pit minutely to retrieve the item.

Marie looked up at Lexa with a slightly cocked head glancing at Anya in question. The general had caught Lexa’s low words and nodded to the commander before she said under her breath “I hope you still wish for those kill marks”.

Marie’s grey eyes widened when the meaning of the words sunk in and she straightened slightly nodding with a fleeting smile.

Lexa loudly proclaimed that it was time for Marie to receive her first kill marks and the warriors answered the proclamation with an exited roar. It was rare for the commander to bestow the honour of a kill mark to anyone.

Indra returned shortly after offering a dagger to the commander that was bound in a black piece of cloth.

Marie felt nervous all of a sudden unsure of what to expect exactly. She had seen the many kill marks on Anya’s body and she had no doubt that getting them would have hurt a lot. The memory of the Mountain Man taking aim at Anya flashed up in her mind followed by Lexa falling to the floor under the effects of the poison.

Blood was rushing loudly through her ears and she barely heard when Lexa asked her to kneel down in front of her only Anya gently nudging her onto her knees got her into the desired position. She shivered slightly at the sight of the dagger. It was gleaming in the darkness the firelight reflected on the gleaming metal. Its tip was curved in an unusual way and Marie had never seen a blade like this before.

Anya divested Marie of her coat and pushed the girl’s shirt slightly down exposing her shoulders. The skin was still unmarked of any scars and only a few ranks of her large tattoo peeked out around her neck.

The commander gasped onto the girl’s shoulders firmly and their eyes connected as she pressed the curved edge of the blade into the unmarked flesh over her collarbones. Marie hissed slightly at the sharp pain but her hiss was swallowed by the warriors chanting something in Trigedasleng which Marie did not understand through the rushing sound in her ears.

Lexa was handed another knife this one now glowing a bright red where the blade had been heated in the fire pit and Marie’s eyes watered immediately when the blade was pressed against the bleeding little wound sealing it shut as the stench of burning flesh rose into her nose.

The commander handed the ceremonial dagger over to Anya offering the honour to bestow the second mark to her general. The woman accepted the dagger with a silent nod and her brown eyes shown with a strange mixture of pride and regret as she edged the second wound into the flesh above Marie’s collarbone leaving enough space between the first and second mark so that they would stay distinct as two marks.  It was as if she herself could feel the pain of the second blade sealing the wound shut coursing through her own system.

All tiredness had left Marie’s eyes and tears were glistening in them and her face had a sick greenish complexion. Anya hoped the girl would not throw up right here but keep herself together until they would be in their tent.

The people roared loudly acknowledging Marie as an honoured member of themselves now. Receiving the honour of the first kill mark was a sort of threshold in the life of a warrior signalling the transition between childhood and adulthood.

Clarke’s eyes clearly showed her horror at what she had just witnessed and the blonde was relieved when Anya offered to escort her to her tent before returning to their own tent with Marie after the inhabitants of TonDC had shared a drink in honour of Marie.

Marie felt slightly wobbly on her feet and the wounds pulsed angrily against her collarbone with every heartbeat. She had known that it would hurt but she had not anticipated just how much but she still felt a small surge of satisfaction that she would forever be reminded of the time she had made her first kill to save Anya and how she had nearly killed Lexa without even meaning to.

The alcohol Anya had forced into her hand as to not offend the others was making her feel a strange kind of fuzzy and she stumbled almost blindly in front Anya feeling a guiding hand on her shoulder. On the edge of her consciousness it registered in her mind that Anya and Clarke were talking in rather heated tones but she was unable to decipher the words.

During the drink that had gone around the fire pit some inhabitants of TonDC had approached Clarke reverently thanking her for freeing them of the shadow of the Mountain forever. The commander had proclaimed that the whole Mountain was destroyed now and the news had brought a round of cheers through the crowd. Clarke had seemed to shrink into herself when more and more people came forward to personally thank her. She had been unable to say anything in response being on the verge of either exploding or fleeing when a small boy had approached her at last. She judged the child to be no older than six years old and he also thanked her telling her that both his parents had been taken by the Mountain and tears had involuntarily welled up in her blue eyes.

Lexa had watched her people approaching Clarke silently from a slight distance. It was obvious that the blonde felt uncomfortable but she could not help her right now. Whenever their eyes met accidentally Lexa saw a flash of rage in Clarke’s blue eyes. She felt a flash of guilt at being part of the reason for the struggle Clarke was facing but she could not have mad another decision. Looking back now she knew for sure that she would again take the deal.

Anya had rescued her from the situation by offering her to escort her to her tent. The general kept a firm hand on Marie’s shoulder and narrowed her eyes at Clarke who walked slightly in front of them her hands shoved firmly into the pockets of her jacket and her eyes gleaming angrily.

The general huffed under her breath, she knew that the people would be offended if the blonde Sky leader kept reacting this badly to her righteous praise “Wanheda is a title of great honour among our people, Clarke” she stressed her tone even.

The blonde suddenly stopped as if frozen by her words and her eyes were blazing as she spat “I do not want to be honoured for genocide!” her voice was loud and agitated and Anya had not doubt in mind the blonde would have stormed off on her own if she had any destination.

She rolled her eyes meeting the Sky leaders gaze unfazed “You destroyed our greatest enemy” she explained “Something no commander was able to. You have killed a few hundred, only some really innocent among them, while they have taken thousands of our people through the years”.

She pointed towards a relatively small tent to their left side “Your tent for the night” was all she said and guided Marie away from Clarke towards the bigger tent of the commander. Anya could hear Clarke huffing but the rustling of the tent flaps told her that the girl had entered the tent and she knew that guards would keep an eye on the Sky leader through the night.

Anya pushed Marie to sit down on a stool next to the big table where some maps lay scattered around. The girl sunk onto the stool with a dazed look her hands immediately going to her collarbone gingerly inspecting the fresh wounds.

“Keep away from them” Anya reprimanded gently swatting the girl’s fingers away. She knew the pain would only increase if the girl picked at the fresh forming scars, Nyko would have an ointment to help with the healing and which would ease the itching the healing scars would cause in the next days.

Marie looked up at her with her big grey eyes “I did not think it would hurt that much” the girl confessed her voice expressing her surprise.

Anya snorted under her breath. She still remembered how much her own first kill mark had hurt physically but she thought the ones she received later hurt less as she knew what to expect.

After a few moments of silence Marie suddenly said “I am a real warrior now, am I not?”

A small smile tugged at Anya’s lips as she nodded her expression still serious and grave “And warriors need to rest” she said a teasing note to her tone. She could watch the exhaustion reappearing on the girl’s features with every passing second.

The girl frowned but after she had down the cup of water Anya had handed over to her she obliged and laid down on the furs already prepared for them.

“Will you stay?” the girl’s voice sounded small and her expression reflected how vulnerable and stirred up she was right now.

Anya nodded shrugging out of the heavy coat and the light armour she had worn underneath the coat and slipping out of her boots. She wondered internally why the girl was this riled up. Both she and Lexa had noticed that the girl’s mood had seemed off for the whole journey so far but they had no clue what had dampened her spirit as the girl had been uncharacteristically quite.

When she laid down Marie still had her eyes stubbornly open but Anya was unable to decipher the emotions flashing through the grey orbs. “What troubles you?” she asked their charge in a soft tone watching the girl’s expression carefully.

“I don’t know” the girl said sounding slightly whiny as if she was annoyed by her feelings as well.

“Mmh” Anya huffed “Not good enough of an answer. Try again. You have been awfully quite since we left Skykru”.

A flash of emotions on the girl’s face tipped her off that leaving Skykru was a huge point in the girl’s feelings.

“You will undoubtedly see your friend again” Anya tried guessing for the reason. She had learned already that Marie would try to evade sleep as long as she could if she felt troubled and the girl needed to rest.

Marie nodded but her troubled expression remained but she also did not say anything just kept on looking at Anya intently.

“I cannot read your thoughts” Anya huffed after a few moments of silence knowing that guessing might as well take the whole night.

“Maura still has a mother” the girl exclaimed after a few more silent moment.

Anya blinked at the disconnected statement furrowing her brow trying to understand the reason for Marie’s mood. Orphans were something completely normal among their people so she was unable to decipher the problem.

“I do not have any parents anymore” Marie added when Anya still looked confused after sometime.

Anya nodded her brows still furrowed “And you will never have parents again” she stated the simple fact. But obviously that had been the wrong thing to say.

Marie’s expression fell completely and tears gathered in her eyes with quivering lips she suddenly turned away from Anya turning her back on the woman while bursting into tears.

Anya blinked at the girl’s back stunned by her reaction. She cautiously put a hand on Marie’s shaking shoulder but the girl shook her off immediately scooting away from her touch.

In exactly this moment Lexa entered the tent and narrowed her eyes at the scene she found. It was obvious Marie was silently crying but was refusing comfort from Anya which somewhat unexpected. Lexa met Anya’s gaze silently which reflected how perplexed the older woman was herself.

The commander quickly discarded her red sash and large shoulder pauldron together with the rest of her lighter armour and her two swords.

Marie laid facing the larger part of the tent so that Lexa could easily sit down in front of the girl efficiently cornering her between Anya and her own body.

“You are not crying because of the kill marks, are you?” she asked the girl in a soft tone gently urging the girl to look up at her.

Marie instantly shook her head her lips still quivering and a few more tears sliding down her cheeks.

Lexa carefully wiped the tears away with a gentle touch “What is it then?” she inquired keeping her tone gentle.

After a long silence Marie finally exclaimed voice gruff from crying “I will never have a family again…”

Anya and Lexa shared a silent glance and the older woman sat up behind Marie putting a hand on her shaking shoulder to sooth the girl but otherwise she seemed rather lost for words. Nothing they would say could change the fact that the girl’s parents were dead.

Lily’s words flashed up in Lexa’s mind but she shooed them away vehemently. She wiped away the fresh tears from the girl’s cheeks shushing her in soft tones.

It took a few moments until the exhaustion of the day caught up with their charge and Marie had cried herself to sleep. Both Anya and Lexa stood up from the bed again sharing their worried expression.

“She will get over it” Anya mumbled after some moment of silence between them. Both of them had turned so that you could watch the girl sleeping her expression still looking somewhat troubled.

Although Lexa internally doubted her previous mentor’s words she nodded. She hoped that seeing her old friend again together with facing the Mountain one last time had just upset their charge and she would turn back into her normal chirpier self on her own with some quieter days.

They sat hunched over a map of their surroundings settling on the route they would take once the horses had rested until Marie started to toss around under the furs and Anya went over to calm the girl down again before she could wake up completely.

The night passed relatively quietly and Lexa or Anya had managed to keep their charge asleep fighting off her nightmares before she could be woken by them.

To both of their relive Marie’s mood had lifted considerably after a restful night so neither of them brought the episode from the evening back up.

Nyko came into their tent to clean Marie’s fresh kill marks. Although it was intended for them to scar they needed to be kept clean before an infection could fester. Marie grimaced in pain when the healer put a wet rag to the wounds but apart from that the girl kept sitting obediently still until the healer had finished.

They went to the communal fire pit together to get some breakfast. Marie was slightly disappointed that Risha was still nowhere to be found but she knew that they were staying another night and hoped that the cub would have returned by then.

After breakfast Marie accompanied Lexa to the training pit where Indra was already overseeing Octavia’s training. The older girl had clearly gained a lot of experience in the past weeks and Marie doubted she would be able to hold herself against her now. Octavia was sparring with Lincoln and Indra stood watching criticizing if Octavia made an error.

Lexa made Marie run a few times around the training pit to warm up the girl’s muscles and she saw that Anya was trying to teach Clarke how to ride a slight distance away.

After the girl finished her rounds she came to a stop beside Lexa glancing over at Anya as well just as Clarke promptly fell from the horse for at least the third time in a row.

Marie furrowed her brow “Why have I not fallen down once yet?” the girl wondered obviously genuinely curious.

Octavia winced in sympathy for Clarke and chimed in before the commander could answer the question “Because you got the “cute kid” bonus”.

Marie looked over at the older girl with a frown a slight pout on her lips as she said “I do not!” and she crossed her arms over her chest in a way that had Lexa fighting off a smile tugging at her lips at the undeniably “cute” antics of the girl.

Ignoring the girl’s antics for now Lexa moved to stand directly in front of her getting in sparring position prompting Marie to do the same. Lexa immediately made a few minor corrections to Marie’s stance before they started a light sparring match.

Internally Lexa had to admit that both she and Anya were taking it easier on Marie in training then they had to but still training with children always demanded of the mentor to hold back. There was no use beating a child to the ground over and over without giving them the chance to learn something. The fondness Lexa had spotted in Indra’s eyes when she supervised Octavia told the commander that they were not the only ones who now had a soft spot for a girl from the sky.

 

 

 

 

Chapter 94

The day they had to wait in TonDC for the horses to recover passed relatively quickly. Marie was happy when Risha suddenly turned up shortly before it was time for the last meal of the day.

After the training session Marie had been left to her own devices for some time and she had ended up with the commander’s horse again.

Anya had given up trying to teach Clarke how to ride it seemed the blonde Sky leader would need more than a short lesson to really learn how to guide a horse. It certainly did not help that the blonde was obviously very impressed bordering on frightened by the huge mounts.

Anya’s horse had tried to come over to Marie as well when the girl stood petting Lexa’s steed. But the black steed had neighed aggressively at Anya’s horse to back off as if it did not want to share the girl’s attention.

Gustus stood not far from Marie keeping an eye on the girl unobtrusively and watched how the girl glared up at the commander’s steed. Marie stopped petting the black horse all together and moved over to the general’s horse saying something to the animal in a soft tone too low for Gustus to catch the words. She now gently scratched Anya’s brown horse behind its ears and after a moment Lexa’s back horse came over hanging its head and butting the girl on her shoulder as if to apologize.

The girl let out a loud laugh but as she turned she looked up at the black horse with strict eyes “Don’t be mean again, or I won’t pet you anymore” the girl threatened the commander’s steed.

Gustus had to stifle a laugh at the scene shaking his head with fondness in his eyes. The girl was spoiling both the commander’s and the general’s horses rotten with her attention and the animals were war horses and not pets. He watched a boy close to Marie in age who was obviously a second to the warrior responsible for TonDC’s stables work and care for the other horses of the warriors. Gustus was struck by the difference between the two children.

The boy did his tasks dutifully focused on his work completely he already sprouted a serious expression. He had seen the same boy at the communal fire pit the night before laughing and joking with his friends.

For Marie it still seemed to be the other way around. She was easily distracted from the minor tasks Lexa or Anya would give to her, looking around her at the world with wide eyes full of wonder. It was obvious she did not have the years of training the boy already had but her antics and chirpier personality were something different and absolutely charming. He did not doubt that the girl would grow to be a fine warrior under Lexa’s and Anya’s tutelage. But she was still pretty much a child and he hoped she would be able to remain this way a little longer before the harshness of their world would turn her as serious as it already had done to the boy.

Anya suddenly appeared behind Gustus coming to stand next to him watching her charge from afar for a moment. Her eyes were soft although her words were annoyed as the general rolled her eyes “She is spoiling both of them”.

Gustus smirked good-naturedly at the other woman but before he could say anything Marie looked in their direction and with one last pet to both horses she hurried over to Anya her features still exited “Is it time for dinner yet?”

The general nodded “Do you need more of Nyko’s ointment?”

Marie scrunched her brow one of her hands immediately reaching up to tug at the shirt scratching uncomfortably over the wounds.

“That is a “yes” then” Anya remarked swatting the girl’s hand from her collar before she could start scratching.

“They itch” Marie commented her voice tinted grouchy.

The general nodded “I am sure Nyko can provide enough of the ointment to last until we reach Polis” walking with the girl to the communal fire pit.

She spotted Nyko standing and talking together with Clarke. The blonde Sky leader had helped the healer for the rest of the day. A group of young hunters had recklessly tried to kill a pauna. Three of them had not survived and two had been gravely injured while three others only suffered minor injuries and had assisted the other two back to TonDC. Nyko was grateful for the help and Clarke herself had been pleased to be able to do something productive.

The blonde looked more relaxed and at peace than Anya could remember ever having seen her and she made a mental note to mention to Lexa that it could certainly not harm to have Clarke help the healers in Polis as well. She knew the commander would of course be able to keep Clarke in the capitol solely as her guest but giving her a purpose could only help her find her own place and maybe start to accept what she had done at the Mountain.

Marie smiled at Nyko when they reached the healer and the man met her smile with kind dark eyes “I guess you require more of my ointment” the healer asked and Marie immediately nodded.

“What do you put in the ointment?” Clarke interrupted them her voice reflecting her genuine curiosity.

“I will bring a pot of the ointment to the commander’s tent” Nyko addressed Anya directly and then turned back to Clarke starting to explain which herbs he used, how they looked, how they needed to be handled, which herb had which property and so on.

Anya had never felt any interest in healing and urged Marie further in the direction of Lexa who was caught up in a conversation with Indra.

A second distributing food around the fire pit went from warrior to warrior handing out plates already filled with bread, a few berries and some freshly roasted meat. Marie accepted her own plate with a kind “thank you” startling the young second and Anya lightly glared at her own second. They had been over this kind of everyday manners many times before but the few days spent back at the Ark had obviously set the girl back slightly falling back into older habits. The girl looked at Anya sheepishly but ate her dinner in silence.

After the meal Marie returned to the commander’s tent together with Lexa and Anya a bowl with innards in her hands for Risha. When they entered the cub lay in the middle of their furs rolled together into a little ball of fur.

Annoyed the general narrowed her eyes at the animal sending another glare Marie’s way while Lexa just smirked silently and started to get rid of her commander regalia. Marie crawled on top of the furs the bowl still in her hands and dangled a bloody part in front of the sleeping cub.

The cub’s grey nose twitched at the smell and its eyes popped open a second later snatching the piece of meat from Marie’s fingers with what looked like careful sharp little teeth.

Anya reprimanded Marie to get out of their bed at once as she had no intention of sleeping in furs soiled with bloody innards. The angry undertone in her mentor’s voice had Marie obey immediately and the girl scrambled to get down from the furs in a blur Risha crawling behind her hands holding onto the bowl.

Anya stood facing the bed glaring constantly at Marie with a strict expression until the girl had placed the cub at the ground to her feet and carefully started to feed the cub there. Lexa just silently watched the exchange with barely hidden amusement opting to remain the silent observer and let Anya handle the situation on her own.

After being fed and seeing that the bowl was indeed empty Risha promptly jumped back onto the bed. “Your mutt will not sleep in my bed in Polis” Anya commented seriously glaring uselessly at the cub.

A young girl was sent to their tent by Nyko delivering the ointment he had promised to provide. Marie got out of her coat and shirt and Lexa cleaned the wounds for her again and put some of ointment on the wounds with gentle fingers. The wounds still looked an angry red but they did not seem infected.

“Time to rest” Lexa proclaimed nudging the girl to lay down.

Marie furrowed her brow looking up at the thin material of the tent “It is not even dark yet” she countered looking up at Lexa with pleading puppy eyes.

“And we are going to leave before dawn” Lexa deadpanned gentling pushing Marie to sit down on the furs.

The girl looked around Lexa at Anya turning her pleading eyes on the older woman “Can’t I stay up…”

But Anya did not let their charge finish her question interrupting her in a sharp tone “Do not even think about it”. Anya remained stoic even as Marie let her shoulders drop and pouted slightly. The general kept on taxing the girl with a piercing glare until she conceded and simply laid down on the bed.

Lexa was slightly puzzled that the girl now obviously tried to manipulate them against each other. She internally asked herself if she had tried the same when she was younger with Anya but she could not remember. It seemed Anya was at least sort of immune to Marie’s pleading puppy eyes as she had felt that she would have given in and just read something to the girl instead until she would fall asleep unwilling to see the girl unhappy.

They both turned in shortly after Marie and the girl immediately snuggled up to Lexa holding a slight grudge against Anya. Lexa willingly enveloped the girl in her arms letting her press her head against her chest listening to her heart beat and feeling the girl’s breath even out a few moments later signalling that she had finally fallen asleep.

The night passed rather peacefully and Marie thankfully only woke up briefly. Afterwards Anya calmed her back down until she fell asleep again now firmly nestled against the woman’s body.

As Lexa had told Marie the evening before the camp started to be dismantled around them long before the sun rose for the day. Even though the night had been restful Marie was still not pleased to be woken at this time. Lexa and Anya were both already dressed and ready to leave their shared tent when Anya finally stepped over to the bed and tried to wake Marie.

The girl whinnied in her sleep turning away from the hands trying to shake her awake and burrowed deeper under the warm furs.

Anya narrowed her eyes at the girl and with one firm tug she had taken the fur away from Marie which had been covering her body. The girl startled awake instantly letting out an indignant squeak at the sudden cold air and lack of warmth.

“I said stand up” Anya looked down at the girl and saw Lexa watching them a smile tugging at the corner of her lips.

The girl sat up on the bed rubbing at her eyes blearily and met Anya’s steely gaze unfazed “It is too early” she complained a pout forming on her lips.

“Stand up!” Anya commanded again her voice even sharper “I will not repeat myself”.

“We will be leaving soon” Lexa informed their charge clasping on her shoulder pauldron.

“Or you will stay here” the general threatened.

Lexa watched Marie’s reaction with a frown. The girl practically jumped from the bed at the threat her expression clearly showing that she believed the threat without doubt.

Marie quickly put on her warmer clothes struggling to get everything fastened the correct way in her haste and she kept on shooting glances at Anya as if checking that the general had not suddenly decided that she had taken long enough and would truly be left behind. Internally Marie was wondering if Anya would really leave her in TonDC. Would Lexa even allow that? But as she did not want to find out the answer to the questions she tried to get ready as fast as possible.

When they stepped out of their tent the camp was already filled with activity although it was still mostly dark. Marie immediately slung her arms around her body at the sudden crisp cold air.

Frost had arrived in the night and the grass crunched slightly under their boots and Marie was fascinated to see her breath come out as condensed white puffs.

Risha had followed Marie out of the tent and the cub was looking at the thin layer of ice covering the grass with what appeared to be a frown licking at her paws after she had taken a few steps out of the tent.

Marie let out a laugh at the sight and quickly picked Risha up from the cold ground settling the cub into her arms “What is that?” the girl asked looking down at the grass.

“Frost” Anya simply answered and looked up at the sky with a slight worried expression “The cold season seems to start sooner than expected”.

The commander and her general shared a silent glance and both knew that they needed to reach Polis as soon as possible. The cold season was sometimes hard to predict and the first nights of frost could already bring snow which would make travelling the distance more dangerous.

The general ushered their charge in the direction of the communal fire pit, other warriors would dismantle their tent for them. The fire pit in TonDC was always kept aflame even through the night and other warriors who would travel with them and had their seconds take down their tents for them were also already there to have a quick breakfast.

The commander remained in the middle of the camp watching as Clarke came from the tent she had spent the night in being called out by Ryder who was assigned to take it down. Lexa noted how exhausted the blonde woman looked, dark circles had formed under her eyes indicating that she must suffer from severe nightmares as well keeping her awake.

She stopped one of the older seconds with the order to ask around if there were warmer clothes they could spar, Clarke’s clothing would not do to ward of the sudden cold and they would be travelling all day, maybe even well into the night. She somehow doubted that Clarke would take the clothes if she herself were to offer them, it had not gone unnoticed by the commander how the blonde seemed to stiffen every time their eyes met and she was careful to keep her distance. She viewed as some sort of progress that Clarke had preferred to accompany them to Polis in the first place and she would go from there.

Anya brought back a plate for Lexa with some breakfast while Marie carried her cub again. Most of the tents were already taken down and packed away ready to leave and the boy who helped at the stables in TonDC was going around bringing various horses to their rightful owners.

Lexa’s and Anya’s horses were the last ones the boy brought from the stables but he was unable to actually lead the commander’s horse by the reigns as the mount had tried to bite his fingers when he wanted to grab them, fortunately the black steed followed him on her own account.

Both horses actually seemed more eager to greet their second then to acknowledge the commander and the general themselves. Anya’s horse was obviously slightly put off by Risha in Marie’s arms but its desire to be petted as well seemed to outweigh its distrust of the wolf cub.

Anya looked slightly affronted to be ignored by her horse while Lexa just accepted the plate from her former mentor with a curt nod simply watching their charge interact with the animals.

At least Anya’s horse seemed to grudgingly accept Risha’s presence meaning the girl could share the mount with the general for the day and Lexa could ride on her own again.

The warriors had finished getting ready to leave in no time at all. Clarke had accepted the warmer clothes with a surprised warm thank you recognizing that the temperature had dropped a few notches overnight.

Lexa smirked as her own steed seemed to look almost jealously how Anya boosted Marie up into the saddle on her own brown horse. The commander mounted her own steed in one fluid motion and called the group to start moving. Indra together with Octavia, Lincoln and a few other inhabitants of TonDC watched them leave and Lexa nodded to the village chief before she steered her horse to lead the way.

Marie burrowed as close as possible against Anya’s chest feeling the biting chill of the cold air unpleasantly. After some time the girl asked lowly, too low for Lexa or Gustus who were riding next to them to hear “Would you have really left me in TonDC?” The girl’s voice was laced with insecurities and Anya narrowed her eyes at her charge.

“What do you think?” the general retorted critically. 

When Marie remained silent for long moments obviously thinking Anya huffed feeling slightly affronted “Of course not, Marie” she tightened her arms around her smaller body in silent reassurance. She mused internally why the girl still obviously had doubts about her place with them if a simple teasing remark had such an impact on her.

Marie relaxed again against Anya exhaling a long breath she had not been aware of holding in the first place feeling rather stupid for believing that the woman would have left her in TonDC. The girl thought about apologizing to Anya but she feared she would only deepen the personal insult if she did, so she remained silent.

Lexa and she would need to think about ways together how to erase the girl’s doubts once and for all. She hoped that Marie would settle more firmly again once they had reached Polis and the girl would have a daily routine again.

Anya remembered that Lexa still needed to tell Titus that she expected the flamekeeper to teach Marie certain aspects of the flame and she still hoped to be present when the news hit him.

But what really awaited them in Polis was unclear. Titus reports ordering Lexa to return to the capitol as soon as possible had stopped a few days ago and none of them were sure what to make of that. Lexa now had proof enough to call Nia in front of all the ambassadors to bring charges against the Ice queen for breaking her direct orders in not reporting the Skykru station in her land. It was unclear how the other clans would react to Nia breaking coalition laws. If the ice queen had already bribed other clans to side with her the outcome could be disastrous but Anya knew that Lexa had to take the risk to seize the chance to finally get rid of Nia. The Ice Nation would always remain an unaccountable danger under her reign.

 

Chapter 95

The journey to Polis was cold and long.

Lexa had to stop them a few times when the uneven terrain made it impossible to have a clear view of their surroundings and scouts were sent ahead to secure their path.

Marie’s legs had started to feel really uncomfortable after they had made a short break around midday to allow the horses a few minutes of rest letting them drink water from a stream. To make matters worse it had started to rain not strongly but the continuous cold drops felt like ice on Marie’s face.

Feeling Marie starting to squirm on the saddle in front of her trying to get away from the rain Anya opened her own coat enveloping the girl with it as well and pulling her even closer into her body. The girl relaxed again feeling warmer after a few moments already but her voice mirrored her mood perfectly “My legs feel funny”.

Anya snorted under breath “We will take several more hours to reach Polis”.

Marie groaned at the information still having no feeling for distances and how long the travel would take. The girl closed her eyes letting her head rest back against Anya’s firm chest and she felt asleep only a few moments later.

She was jostled awake an undefined time later when the horse underneath her suddenly increased its pace at Anya’s urging. Marie blinked her eyes her body tensing at the unexpected pace.

“What is wrong?” the girl asked lowly her voice tinged with worry. Darkness was falling around them the sun already setting.

“Nothing” Anya reassured their charge keeping a firm hold on the girl’s body. The commander urged the whole group into a faster pace pushing them to reach Polis before the middle of the night.

Marie had difficulties to recognizes anything from their surroundings in the almost darkness and with the speed it was flowing around them. The rain had gotten harder as well and Marie was internally grateful for Anya’s cloak which proofed to be at least partially waterproof.

She barely registered that they were indeed approaching Polis, her legs felt nearly numb and she hoped someone would help her from the horse when they finally stopped or she feared she would fall down face first as she doubted her legs would be able to hold up her own weight. Risha was thankfully quiet in the shawl wrapped around her own chest.

The gates to the city were already opened for them, the scouts that had preceded them had of course already notified the commander’s impending arrival.

Marie straightened up in front of Anya when she recognized the walls surrounding Polis and Lexa rode ahead of the group.

The streets were mostly empty at this time of the day almost night now, safe for the guards scattered around the streets going about their duty, they all bowed to the commander and whispers of “Wanheda” started to go around them soon.

Clarke seemed to shrink on her horse but she was slightly surprised to see the honest relieve and camaraderie in the warriors’ eyes when they bowed to Lexa. It was clear as day that these people served their commander because they wanted to and all of them would probably die for her without batting an eye.

A small child which had stood behind the legs of one of the warriors stepped slightly in front of the commander’s black steed offering a toothy smile and a single flower in its little fist. The flower had obviously been held in the tight little fist for some time as the petals were already crumbled up.

Lexa stopped her horse abruptly as to not injure the child which she guessed to be around five years old. It was a little boy with brown curls and his brown eyes looked exactly like those of the warrior who had tried in vain to restrain the child at the side of the street.

Clarke watched with a furrowed brow how Lexa stopped the warrior who was probably the little boy’s father from pulling him back from the streets, instead the commander bent down on her horse accepting the crumbled flower from the boy and squeezing his shoulder once gently which brought on a blinding smile on the boy’s round features and the kid excitedly returned into the waiting arms of his father waving to his commander as Lexa steered her horse on nodding once to the warrior. She would not have expected Lexa to react in such a way to such an innocent gesture but she could see the commander how she fastened the crumbled flower to a buckle over chest as if displaying a medal of great honour. She was too far away from the commander to be able to see the other woman’s features clearly but she was pretty sure she had seen a smile on her face when she fastened the flower to her cloak.

Marie smiled when she saw that they neared the tower finally, she hoped Anya would let her get to bed straight away.

Her smile fell considerably when she recognized Titus already waiting for Lexa’s arrival at the base of the tower flanked by guards and Alira.

Lexa dismounted first in one fluid motion handing the reigns off her mount over to the warrior leading the stables, one of the few people who were actually able to handle her horse, after she clapped her mount on her neck in thanks a few times.

The commander first addressed Alira nodding to the woman “I need you to prepare quarters for Clarke from Skykru” she ordered. The older woman nodded immediately smiling with relieve in her eyes at seeing Lexa returned healthily to Polis and left to carry out her orders.

Marie was grateful when Anya swung down from the horse behind her and then helped her down steadying her on her wobbly legs. She could see how Ryder offered the same service to Clarke who did not seem to fare any better.

Lexa stood facing Titus both meeting each other’s gazes intently in silence in what looked to be a staring contest. Titus was the one who sort of broke the eye contact “Heda, we need to meet urgently”.

The commander nodded wordlessly pointing him with a hand to proceed her inside the tower. Lexa nodded to Anya and shortly glanced at Clarke. She met her blue eyes momentarily before she abruptly turned around and vanished into the tower.

A handmaid which had been sent down by Alira addressed Clarke in heavily accented English asking her to follow her to her quarters.

Anya ushered Marie to follow behind Lexa just as Risha peeked her muzzle out of the shawl sniffing the unfamiliar smells of the new surroundings with interest.

Titus narrowed his dark eyes at the cub “This thing will not reside inside the tower” the flamekeeper seethed.

The general just met his glare with bored eyes while Marie looked up at Anya her grey eyes widened in fright. Anya gave Marie a gentle push in the direction of the entrance to the tower ignoring Titus’ comment all together, which she knew would only serve to enrage the bald man even more.

They shared the ride in the elevator up to the top floor with Titus who continuously glared at Marie and her cub prompting the girl to look anywhere but in his direction.

To Marie’s great displeasure Anya guided her past the door to the quarters they shared and into the commander’s quarters.

Lexa was speaking with Alira when they entered “…and I want guards posted at her quarters at all times. She can leave the tower as she pleases but at least two guards are to accompany her at all times” the commander was briefing the lead handmaid in regards to Clarke’s status as her personal guest in the tower.

A fire was blazing in the fireplace and had thankfully already warmed the room to an agreeable temperature. Risha was now urgently squirming in the restraining shawl wanting to be set down again.

“You can let her down, Marie” Lexa shortly turned to the girl having caught them entering from the corner of her eye and then dismissed Alira.

“Help yourselves” Lexa added pointing to the table which was laden with steaming cups with strong tea and some plates with a small variety of different foods. She got rid of the heavy shoulder pauldron, red sash and the cloak setting the items neatly on a free stool while Anya quickly helped their charge with unwinding the shawl around her upper body.

Risha immediately started exploring the commander’s quarters as her paws touched the floor again and Marie openly laughed at the sight of the curious cub.

Titus who had already looked rather irritated at the sole presence of Anya and Marie now looked outright sour, but the flamekeeper knew better than to speak up fully aware that doing so would only incense Lexa.

But when the cub waddled into his direction the bald man immediately took a step backwards as if coming into contact with the animal would taint him in some way.

Marie frowned at the man’s reaction and sat down on one of the couches unclasping her own coat and calling Risha over offering the cub a piece of cold meat.

“So report what has occurred in my absence” Lexa commanded sitting down on an armchair.

Titus folded his hands behind himself and started his report.

Marie barely listened not really interested in the politics. All that registered in her mind was that Roan had asked again to speak with Lexa, that several clans had claimed to have found Ice Nation soldiers scouting their land and that the Desert and the Rock Line Clan were fighting about something. The tiredness from the long journey caught up with her suddenly and Marie fell asleep while Titus was still conducting his report.

The flamekeeper narrowed his eyes into a full glare at the obvious display of weakness while Lexa had quickly risen from her seat and caught the girl’s cup slipping from her fingers before it could fall to the floor. It was obvious the bald man was expecting her to shake the girl awake but Lexa only grabbed a thin blanket from the foot of the couch covering Marie with it and letting her sleep.

Lexa had listened intently to her former teacher’s report “So the leader of Rock Line Clan accused the Desert people to have robbed a huge caravan of vendors?”

Titus nodded hands still clasped behind his back as he had remained standing.

The commander narrowed her green eyes “And you were not able to appease them?” her voice was sharp. She had learned a lot of her diplomacy from the man and she knew he should have been able to handle such a simple transgression.

The bald man seemed to bristle at the question meeting her gaze with hard eyes “I don’t think that is their real reason for the unrest. But I have been unable to locate the actual problem”.

Lexa sighed “Have both ambassadors meet me tomorrow morning and have Roan summoned to the throne room afterwards”.

The bald man nodded although he would have preferred Lexa not granting a second audition to prince Roan but it was clear the young woman had made up her mind on the matter.

“Is that all?” Lexa questioned taking a huge sip from the tea which had started to turn cold.

“No” the man shook his head “Word has spread amongst Polis of the final destruction of the Mountain, the people are most pleased. And another nightblood has been brought to Polis.”

Lexa raised her brow looking up at the man to continue “From which clan?”

“Boat people” Titus’ voice had taken on an angry quality “Luna has hidden a nightblood son”.

Lexa closed her eyes for a moment exhaling loudly. She felt a flash of sympathy for her former companion.

“A flamekeeper traveling through the clans had heard rumours and tested the boy” Titus added “Luna did not let him go willingly, you should still call her to Polis to …”

“No” Lexa simply interrupted unwilling to hear his advice in the matter “How old is he?”

“Five summers” Titus said “He has not settled in yet. He tries to get away at any chance”.

The commander nodded “I will see the nightbloods later tomorrow. Have their afternoon cleared”.

She remembered how Luna had cautioned her at the festival a few weeks back to be careful in regard to Marie and the words rang loudly in her ears.

Titus dismissed himself a few moments later when it was clear that there was nothing urgent left to discuss for the night.

Anya stretched her legs out once Titus had left the commander’s quarters “The unrest between the clans sounds suspiciously like Nia could have her fingers in there”.

Lexa nodded with a thoughtful expression, she had already had the same foreboding feeling. She knew that Nia would be desperate at the moment to find anything to tear the coalition apart.

“I would have assumed Luna would know better than to hide a nightblood” Anya commented after a few moments of silence.

Lexa inclined her head looking at her former mentor with a heavy expression “It is rather that she knows what awaits him that I can understand her attempt to hide his existence.”

Anya frowned but Lexa added “Would you want Marie to train for the conclave?”

The general’s frown deepened and her lips pressed into a harsh line when she shook her head in the negative.

Lexa sighed again but met Anya’s stare with a knowing look on her face, when she jawed slightly Anya stood up and carefully scooped the sleeping girl up into her arms.

“Rest well, commander” the general bid Lexa goodbye with a smirk on her face.

Risha’s ears perked up at the sound of the opening door and quickly followed Anya carrying Marie down the corridor. The girl started to wake in Anya’s arms and when she looked around disoriented Anya just hushed her directly putting her down into the girl’s own bed.

Only an hour later Anya regretted the decision to lay Marie into her own bed when the girl started to scream loudly being caught up in a nightmare.

The general stumbled out of her own bed her legs tangled up in the furs and hurried over the few strides to Marie’s bed gently shaking the girl to rouse her.

When Marie’s grey eyes shot open they were wide and filled with tears her breathing erratic.

“Ssshh” Anya tried to sooth the girl enveloping her smaller body into a tight hug and gently stroking her hair in a soothing motion.

She lifted the girl from her bed and carried her over to her own bigger bed laying back down the girl snuggled to her chest feeling her tears dampening her shirt.

“Is Lexa alright?” the girl after a few moments when her tears had finally stopped.

“Of course” Anya reassured the girl immediately having no reason to doubt that.

Marie nodded and swallowed heavily before she burrowed deeper against Anya’s chest.

Anya felt asleep long before Marie being exhausted from the travel. Marie laid awake listening to Anya’s strong heartbeat trying to will herself to fall back asleep.

When it had not worked for what felt for Marie like an eternity later the girl cautiously stood up again. Barefoot Marie silently padded to the door looking over her shoulder and finding Anya still deeply asleep.

She had no idea why, but in the moment Marie desperately wanted to see Lexa. She did not remember exactly what her nightmare had been about, all she could remember vividly was a lot of black blood.

Careful not to make too much noise Marie opened the door and slipped out into the hall closing the door behind her just as carefully.

The girl frowned slightly that no guards were standing post in front of their quarters but she could see two guards stationed in front of Lexa’s quarters.

She did not know them personally but they seemed to know who she was as they opened the door to the commander’s quarters for her without question.

Lexa had immediately sat up in the bed a dagger already in her hand at the sound of the door opening.

Marie could see her green eyes searching her intently as she put down the dagger in the flickering light of the few remaining candles and the fire place.

“Is something wrong?” Lexa inquired worry obvious on her face as she slid from the bed coming up to Marie on bare feet. 

The girl quickly shook her head feeling slightly stupid that she had intruded into Lexa’s quarters at all. She looked at the floor not meeting Lexa’s eyes unsurely.

“What troubles you?” Lexa asked again gently guiding Marie’s chin up to meet her gaze.

Marie looked at the woman’s face and noted guiltily how tired she seemed to be “I am sorry that I woke you…” she tried to apologize.

Lexa shook her head stopping the girl’s apology “You can always seek me out, no matter the time or the reason” she reassured her voice grave and honest.

She guided the girl over to her bed deciding that the girl could simply sleep here, but she was still determined to find out the reason why she suddenly appeared here and she doubted that Anya was aware that Marie had left their quarters.

Marie willingly slipped between the furs next to Lexa immediately snuggling up to her.

“And now you can tell me, why you are here” Lexa implored again her tone firm.

Marie bit her lip a moment before she said “It’s stupid really…”

“I still want to know” was Lexa’s serious reply keeping a close watch of the girl’s face.

“I had a nightmare” Marie said which did not surprise the commander at all as she could still spot tear tracks on the girl’s cheeks.

“And I can’t remember about what” Marie continued tightening her arms around Lexa’s chest “But there was so much black blood … Anya said you were fine, but I needed to …”

Lexa smiled down reassuringly at the girl gently pushing a stray strand of hair from her face “As you can see, I am alright. It was only a dream, Marie”.

Although Lexa internally thought it could quickly turn into the truth. The life of a leader was never a save one and the reign usually ended only with a mostly abrupt death.

“But you can stay here for now” Lexa added squeezing the girl’s shoulders and closing her eyes by thus efficiently ending the conversation for now. It worried her slightly that Marie truly had felt the need to physically see her.

She would not really have a problem to share her quarters with Anya and Marie for the time until Marie finally settled down again and her nightmares would cease but she doubted that her general would really like that idea.

But if there would be repetitions of tonight they would have to think of a solution until Marie felt better and somehow Lexa had the feeling that there would be repetitions. The girl had always slept best if all three of them had shared the furs together in a tent.

In the morning even before dawn Anya suddenly burst into the room waking Lexa in the process. The expression on her face indicated just how much of a fright she had been in at finding Marie gone. The guards in front of Lexa’s quarters had changed through the night and had thus not known where the girl could be.

 

Chapter 96

The first thing Marie did when she woke up to Anya and Lexa talking to each other was quickly slipping from the furs and padding to the balcony door with bare feet taking a quick peek outside.

Anya watched with a furrowed brow how their charge disappeared on the balcony only dressed in the thin oversized shirt she wore for sleeping. A moment later Marie reappeared in the room her shoulders hung slightly in obvious disappointment and she was hoping from feet to feet probably from the cold floor.

Before she could ask Marie already said dejectedly “There is still no snow” the pout on her lips obvious and her eyes glared slightly accusingly at Anya “You said there would be snow after frost”. She completed her antics by crossing her arms over her chest petulantly.

Anya could only blink at their charge startled by the silent accusation that the weather was somehow her fault and thus the lack of snow.

Lexa could not contain a light laugh at the girl’s behaviour and shook her head with gentleness in her green eyes “As powerful as you may think Anya is, she is not able to influence or foresee the weather, Marie, not even for you”. She playfully ruffled the girl’s hairs “It may take several weeks for the first snow to fall or it could come any day now” she explained “There is still hot water in the tube left for a bath for you”.

Marie’s pout was replaced by a smile at the mention of the bath and she immediately skidded into the bathroom vanishing behind the door in a blur. The sound of sloshing water only a few moments later a clear indicator that the girl had already gotten into the water.

The commander carefully combed through her own hair which was still lose and damp from her own bath when she asked her former mentor in a thoughtful tone “Have I ever accused you of influencing the weather?”

Anya snorted grabbing a piece of bread “You have, if I think of it”.

Lexa raised her brow at the general not remembering this episode at all.

“You accused me of letting it rain none stop on the first longer scouting mission we did” Anya remembered with fondness in her brown eyes “You said that I would let it rain just to spite you”.

Lexa grimaced slightly when the memory did come back to her but a smile tugged at Anya’s lips so she refrained from commenting.

Alira knocked at the door coming in to braid Lexa’s hair for her. The handmaid had taken Risha down to the kitchens with her when she had asked about breakfast and other handmaidens had prepared the bath.

The older woman smiled slightly at the cub now following on her heels “All the kitchen stuff is already enamoured by the cub” she recounted “And the guards have been informed to spread word that the cub is to remain unharmed. If it wins over the citizens of Polis as quickly it will be the most spoilt wolf ever”.

“I have no doubt there” Lexa commented drily while Anya huffed already picturing that to be exactly what would happen if the people of TonDC were any indication.

Alira was still occupied with plaiting Lexa’s wild hair into its usual braids when Marie came out of the bathroom a towel wrapped firmly around her body.

“I don’t have fresh clothes” the girl commented keeping the towel firmly around her body for warmth. The fire had been stocked again and was blazing in the fire place but the temperature had still dropped several degrees in the room overnight.

“You should have checked that before jumping into the bath” Anya remarked in a reprimanding tone but she nevertheless got up from her seat to fetch Marie some clothes from their room.

The girl looked abashed at the reprimand and nodded with a crestfallen expression. Risha enthusiastically padded over to her human welcoming her for the day and efficiently brought a light smile back onto the girl’s face and giggling out of her mouth.

“Can I have something to feed her?” Marie asked after petting the cub for some moments.

“She is already fed” Alira informed the girl with a friendly smile. With a twinkle in her eyes she added “Your little friend has won over the kitchen staff immediately”.

 “Oh” Marie commented with a light frown obviously not sure what to make of that news but she remembered to thank the handmaiden for taking care of the cub a moment later. Anya had made it clear that taking care of the cub’s needs was her task alone if she truly wanted to keep it. But she guessed that her mentor would not blame her to neglect has task as Alira had already taken Risha with her when she was still asleep.

Anya returned a few moments later with a pile of fresh clothes for Marie. The outfit was completely new and Marie had not seen any of the items before.

The trousers were pretty tight against her skin and seemed to consist of some kind of leather. A lose dark long sleeved shirt went underneath some binders for her forearms. Anya had to help her in fastening them on correctly. She also now had a thick belt around her waist but she was confused to find a red piece of cloth included in the pile.

Marie held up the red piece of fabric with a questioning look “Where does that belong?” She wondered internally why it resembled Lexa’s red sash so strongly.

Alira had finished with Lexa’s hair and the commander took the piece of cloth from her. Now that Lexa held the red fabric it was obvious it looked exactly like her red sash and Marie frowned.

“You are officially my second and you will be noticeable as that as well” Lexa explained taking on the confusion on the girl’s face. She unfastened the belt around the girl’s waist again and knotted the piece to her belt before bringing it around her waist again. “We will see where it suits you best” Lexa commented not yet quiet satisfied with the placement. She knew that giving Marie a red sash completely identical to her own would be impractical to the girl’s movements and would probably not go over to well with Titus.

Lexa stepped back from Marie to look at her from a longer distance and she shook her head finding the placement of the red cloth completely unsuitable. The girl’s long blonde hair was still lose as well and an idea struck the commander.

“Sit down” she directed Marie to a stool and took of her belt again. With the help of a dagger Lexa made thinner pieces out of the red piece of fabric. With practised fingers Lexa quickly plaited the girl’s hair into a series of braids and in a few she included a thin band of the red fabric.

Finished with the design she took a step back and nodded approvingly. The red bands contrasted starkly with her light gold hair and stood out strongly, it stood out much stronger than worn on her belt now. Part of the girl’s long hair was still lose and some ends of the red bands were mixed into it almost giving the illusion of red blood mixed into her blonde hair.

Alira and Anya had watched Lexa working on the girl’s hair and the handmaiden nodded “I doubt she will be able to do that herself anytime soon, but it certainly suits her”.

“It will certainly mark her as your second without any doubt” Anya commented with a slight grimace on her face. She was practical in that regard and knew that this hair style would be noticeable even from a great distance, but on the other hand her light blonde hair already did that on its own.

Lexa had already asked for her personal blacksmith to be sent to her later that day. She wanted short swords specifically crafted for Marie together with a second dagger to go with the one she had gifted the girl with a few weeks back. And she would also speak to a wood craftsman to see about a bow made for her size.

She had also planned to finally tell Titus that she expected the man to teach their second about the flame. The way her nightblood children had openly accepted Marie amongst them reassured her that whoever of them would one day succeed her could keep Marie in her current position. She highly doubted that the flamekeeper would be pleased with her orders but she would not give him a choice in that matter.

Said man entered the room not a moment later and remained frozen in his step at the sight of Marie his dark eyes blazed over angrily but Lexa just looked at her former teacher challengingly.

Titus was grinding his teeth together in silent anger but the man seemed to swallow down whatever retort he had come up with before he straightened his face once again mostly impassive “The ambassadors are waiting for you” he proclaimed.

Lexa nodded that she understood but she halted Titus in his retreat with a simple gesture of her hand “I want you to teach Marie the duties of a flamekeeper in the future” she stated bluntly her tone leaving no room for discussion as she fastened the shoulder pauldron to her body and adjusted the red sash flowing from her left shoulder.

The man blinked a few times at her obviously stunned silent for probably the first time in his life, at least the first time Lexa could remember seeing the man truly speechless. But the angry reaction she had anticipated did not take long to appear on his features.

Anya looked suspiciously gleeful to watch the bald flamekeeper this flustered.

Titus had a vein angrily popping on his forehead and he was opening and closing his fists at his side grinding his teeth so strongly together that Lexa feared he might actually break a tooth. His voice was seething and the emotion in it raw and uncontrolled and his dark eyes blazing as he finally found his words back “Surely you can’t mean that seriously, commander?!”

The general openly smirked at the man while Marie seemed to be at least slightly affronted at the openly hostile reaction from the flamekeeper.

“Oh, but of course, I am” Lexa answered in a purposefully bored tone which left Titus gaping at her in silent aggravation.

“I … I …” he pressed out through clenched teeth “She is not even born on the ground!” he finally snapped his voice heated.

“So?” the commander asked back with a slightly tilted head her green eyes hard.

“You refused every second from every clan thus far” Titus reminded her loudly “Appointing her is already creating favouritism and making her a flamekeeper is totally unacceptable!”

“So you refuse?” Lexa countered her voice deadly serious and her eyes daring. She knew she was towing a dangerous terrain right now with her former teacher, but she was well aware that there were other flamekeepers who would be able to teach Marie.

When the man opened his mouth again to retort something Lexa cut in stepping closer to the bald man staring him down even though she was physically smaller than him “If you want to defy me on this, I am sure another flamekeeper can take up your place”. Her voice and hard eyes indicated clearly that she was deadly serious on this matter and had already made up her mind.

Lexa was aware that replacing Titus would not necessarily bring something good for her. The man had already served four other commanders before her and loyalties for him were by thus very deep. She did not doubt that the man would have enough power to cause her trouble if he wished so. If he would truly refuse here she would not have another choice than to either kill him for his open defiance or at least banish him from her lands.

Marie watched the exchange with a furrowed brow worry clear in her grey eyes and Anya’s hard expression indicated to her that the situation was very serious. She internally debated if she should just offer to Lexa not to learn to be a flamekeeper, but she doubted her input would be appreciated at the moment. It was clear that the exchange between the commander and her flamekeeper was some sort of struggle for dominance and interfering would probably just serve to make Lexa mad at her in addition to Titus who quiet obviously already hated her for some reason.

Titus snapped his mouth shut with an audible click meeting Lexa’s stony gaze for a moment before he sighed what sounded dejectedly to Marie and after another moment he nodded to Lexa “It will happen as you wish, commander”. His voice had been heavy still and it was clear he was anything than happy with his orders but Lexa knew she could trust him to follow them.

Lexa’s whole pose seemed to relax minutely and she nodded in silent acceptance keeping her chin slightly higher and jutted out.

She indicated to Titus that she would come to meet with the ambassadors in a moment and the man left without another word.

Lexa let out a long heavy breath, she had not liked that she needed to threaten Titus to get him to comply with her orders. It did not bode well with her that her previous teacher still seemed to think that it was him who had more power in certain aspects.

Alira silently cleared away the dishes from breakfast but the worry in her eyes was easy to spot. The handmaiden remained silent choosing not to comment on what had just transpired.

Once the older woman had left the room a moment later Marie spoke up hesitantly “I don’t need to learn that if it causes so much trouble…”

Her body language clearly conveyed how uncomfortable the whole exchange had made the girl and she already doubted that having lessons with Titus would really go over well for her. Silently she already dreaded to have to be alone with the man in the future. He could easily push her out of a window or something and make it look like an accident if he wanted, couldn’t he?

“That is not for you to decide” Lexa commented her voice sharper than usual and Marie flinched slightly at the tone. The girl nodded with a dejected expression but Lexa did not say anything further on the matter which she regarded closed for now. She wanted Marie to receive this tutelage, so the girl would.

Anya also looked rather unpleased at Marie’s words and the girl seemed to shrink even more under her piercing glare. She knew that the girl had probably meant well with the offer.

The general indicated Marie with a silent gesture to follow Lexa out of the room and they together went to the throne room in tense silence.

The throne room was mostly empty safe for a few guars posted around the room, two ambassadors and Titus who already stood next to Lexa’s throne.

The two ambassadors immediately stood up from their seats when the commander entered and greeted her respectfully with her title.

Lexa noted at once that the woman representing the Rock Line Clan looked slightly nervous under her piercing glare.

“I have been told that a caravan of your Clan did not reach the Boat people but was robbed in land of the Desert Clan” Lexa directly opened the meeting sitting down on her throne.

The woman nodded immediately her grey bright eyes standing out starkly against her strongly tanned skin “We had been promised salted fish from the Boat People in exchange. But now we have lost both, our wares and what we were promised.”

The dark skinned man from the Desert Clan did not look impressed “You have no proof that your supposed caravan was not robbed by rouge bandits in the dead zone”.

“How much has your clan lost?” the commander inquired looking completely at ease on her throne.

The woman listed up quickly what had been on the caravan. Lexa narrowed her eyes slightly when the list also contained wares that were not produced in their land.

“… we demand retribution” the woman ended heatedly glaring at the other ambassador.

Lexa looked down at them from her throne in a placating way as if she was overseeing squabbling children.

“I am sure we can find an agreement satisfying both of your clans” she remarked once the woman had finished her rant.

Marie barely listened to the discussion that followed. Her thought still circled around Titus and what learning to become a flamekeeper could entail. She had seen that Titus was teaching the nightblood children but she doubted that they would expect her to do that as well. Other than that she had just seen him as a sort of advisor to Lexa and handling minor things around Polis, but Lexa had told her previously that she would not become a real flamekeeper but just needed to know certain aspects of it. So the question remained rather loudly in her mind what a flamekeeper actually was at all. But it had to be something really important for Titus to be this against her learning.

She was startled out of her thoughts when the ambassadors bowed their farewell to Lexa and the huge doors were opened for their retreat.

Titus also left and Marie heard that he would be teaching the conclave now and later bring them to Lexa as well.

“You should have listened” Anya reprimanded her eyes sharp when she caught Marie’s reaction to their leave, indicating the girl had been lost in her own thoughts for some time now.

Marie let her shoulders drop even more and nodded with a crestfallen expression.

The doors were opened again only a moment later and Roan entered the throne room. The man had been accompanied by two guards who remained standing just outside the door.

 

 

Chapter 97

Marie smiled thinly at Roan when she finally looked up at hearing his voice. Although Lexa and Anya both had been furious with her for trusting him so blindly she still felt that she could trust him.

“What brings you to me now?” Lexa questioned the prince of the Ice Nation.

“Word from my mother has reached me” he simply answered back his bright eyes staring back at her unwaveringly.

Lexa raised a questioning brow at the man for him to continue.

“It seems Ontari is already somewhere in Polis” Roan added after a moment of silence his expression composed.

Anya and Lexa bandied worried looks momentarily. If Nia had really already moved her own nightblood into Polis she would have an immediate plan in action to remove Lexa and the whole conclave.

“For what purpose?” Lexa clarified although the reason was rather apparent without confirmation.

Roan raised a dubious brow at her “To kill the conclave” was his blunt answer a few moments later.

Marie sucked in a harsh breath shocked surprise showing on her features.

“The informant said that the guards on their floor have already been bought by my mother” Roan added in an informative tone.

Anya looked at the man as if he was joking. She had spoken with all the guards posted on the upper floors of the tower herself and all of them had seemed completely loyal and trustworthy to her.

“No need to look so surprised” Roan commented nonchalantly “If you make a high enough offer everyone is corrupt. But I highly doubt they would receive anything else than their own death in exchange.”

“Have the guards exchanged immediately and raise up the number of them with more frequent rotations” Lexa barked at Anya worried that the conclave might truly be in danger. If the Ice Nation nightblood was truly in Polis already undetected than their plan could go into motion at any moment.

The general nodded already striding out of the room. Marie looked undecided if to stay or follow behind Anya so Lexa motioned for the girl to stay in her place.

“So you believe me now?” the prince wanted to know from the commander.

“It does not matter if I believe your word or not” Lexa commented simply remaining vague in her response on purpose.

“Have you been in contact with Ontari?” the commander questioned next her eyes boring into Roan’s intently.

The prince shook his head “No, I have seen her last before my banishment” his displeasure shown through strongly at the word “banishment”.

“I do not know how they plan to eliminate you” Roan added “I doubt they would risk openly challenging you to a duel.

“I have already ordered for messengers to be sent to Nia to summon her in front of the ambassadors to answer for her crimes against Skykru and defying coalition law” Lexa said after nodding. Challenging her to a duel to death would be the most honourable way to go about removing her from power but Nia had never been known to play honourably.

Roan looked confused at the news and Lexa concluded that the prince had been unaware of Skykru landing in his mother’s lands.

“How does Ontari look like?” the commander continued to question. She needed as much information as possible to brief the guards on what to look for.

“The last time I saw her was over three years ago” Roan answered critically “She was relatively small for her age, I doubt she will have grown to be overly tall. She should be around 15 summers now. Dark brown hair, dark eyes, Ice Nation scars on her face”.

Lexa nodded although she was not pleased with the lack of specific information. Except for the scarring on the girl’s face there would be nothing to clearly identify her.

Before Roan left he added “And I have heard rumours that my mother contemplates conquering Skykru”.

Marie looked over worriedly at Lexa an image of Maura flashing up in her mind.

The commander nodded again and called for the guards to escort prince Roan back to his room. The man did not seem surprised at all to be thrown out like that and went with the men willingly.

Lexa remained sitting on her thrown with a contemplative expression Marie fidgeting beside her pulled her out of her thoughts and she put a forced smile on her face momentarily to calm the obviously deeply worried girl slightly.

Anya returned a few moments later the doors rattling closed behind her with unnecessary force. Marie jumped slightly at the unexpected loud noise next to Lexa and noted worriedly that Anya’s hands were bruised and bloodied.

Lexa sighed deeply tightening her jaw angrily fully aware what Anya must have found.

“Guards are to patrol the streets looking for the Ice Nation nightblood” Lexa ordered after a few moments of silence. There was no need for the general to state out loud that Roan’s accusations had been true.

Titus entered the room a few moments later furrowing his brow at Anya’s state. The bald man had been outside of the tower with the nightblood children and had not yet been made aware of the guard change for the conclave.

“The guards for the conclave had been compromised” Lexa simply told him her expression void of emotion although the tone of her voice made it clear how angry she really felt.

 The flamekeeper looked taken aback at the news but he nodded knowing full well that the commander would have already cleared the situation accordingly.

His dark eyes wandered over to Marie minutely before he said “I can begin teaching her now”.

Marie looked slightly alarmed at the sudden offer still totally uncomfortable with the idea of being alone with the man.

The commander nodded “Have all the ambassadors gathered within the hour” was her order before she strode from the room in order to meet her blacksmith.

Anya shortly glanced at Marie and nodded at the girl before she left as well to organize the search of the streets. The general highly doubted that they would be successful in locating the unknown nightblood. Nia would not be dumb enough to send her here alone if she had any doubt she could remain undetected.

“Follow me” Titus commanded in a cold voice and Marie immediately hurried to obediently follow the man out of the throne room.

She had no idea where he wanted to go with her and her heart beat quickly in her chest when they rode the elevator down into the cellar of the tower. Titus did not say a single further word to Marie the whole way and the girl could not help fidgeting nervously.

For a short moment Marie had the irrational fear that the flamekeeper would just put her in a cell in the dungeons and make up a purposed crime to justify her imprisonment.

She breathed slightly easier when they did not go in the direction of the dungeons and their steps echoed loudly from a corridor to the other side of the cellar. Just a few torches hung from the walls barely enough to illuminate the long hall basking it in ghostly flickering shadows.

Marie looked surprised when they stopped in front of a heavy door. The doors material was covered in what looked to be a series of runes or some other symbols.

Two men stood guard in front of the door and she recognized that the clothing they wore strongly resembled Titus’ robe and all of them had shaved heads as well. But in contrast to Titus both of the guards also wore a red sash fastened to their robes.

Both of them looked surprised to see the company Titus was in but neither questioned the man as he was the leading flamekeeper.

They pushed the heavy doors open for them and Titus proceeded into the room mutely indicating Marie to follow her.

Once they had entered the doors were closed behind them again. Marie let her eyes travel through the room with interest. Torches and a variety of candles were basking the room in a golden glow and Marie could make out drawings on different places of the walls.

In addition a few shelves lined one wall heavily filled with different books and lose scrolls of parchment.

Titus turned around facing Marie his dark eyes serious and his voice sharp “What you will be taught here is of utmost secrecy. If you so much as mention a word of what you learn here to anyone beside myself, the commander and her general, I will take great pleasure in killing you myself”.

Marie gulped forcibly sensing immediately that the man did not make empty threats and her grey eyes widened even more. She nodded at once when she recognized that the man was awaiting some kind of response from her.

“You will be coming here an hour a day for as long as it takes you to read this” Titus informed her holding up a book which thankfully looked to be rather slim.

“We will discuss what you have read once you finished” he added offering the book to her.

“Do not damage it!” he cautioned his eyes promising her a probably painful punishment if she did.

Marie nodded again quickly.

“The book will not leave this room under any circumstances” the flamekeeper continued.

With careful fingers Marie accepted the book from his hands. The man glared down at her for another moment before he nodded “You will be called out when your hour is up”.

Not saying anything else Titus left Marie alone. The girl stood in the middle of the room silently gaping behind the man’s retreating back. Marie sighed loudly after the doors had closed again behind Titus. She had thought he would actually teach her something and not just hand over a book to her.

She inspected the book’s cover a little closer but found it was a plain black book bound in some kind of leather probably.

Marie let her eyes wander around the room some more finding the drawing on the wall actually more interesting than the prospect of reading a book. But as she tilted her head to look at them more closely she thought that it would probably be better to follow Titus’ orders. If she did not read anything and the man would ask her what she had read he would most definitely be angry and might even tell Lexa that she refused to learn something.

So with another sigh Marie sat down on the floor leaning against a bookshelf and opened the first side of the book.

Text written in elegant calligraphy met her eyes on the first page.

“Commander Becca … Day 1. May 25, 2052” was written there. Marie furrowed her brow in confusion. If she remembered her brief history lessons correctly 2052 was the year the bombs fell and destroyed the old world.

Marie read on and the hour was over before she knew it. She jumped in fright when the doors were pushed open from the outside and one of the guards called her out.

In the last moment Marie remembered to leave the journal of Becca, although she still did not fully understand who Becca had been, in the room and placed it on the pedestal next to the bookshelf clearly visible.

Her mind was reeling with all the new information she had just read and she was even more confused than before. She had seen that the journal had contained numbers on the pages and it reached up to 350 and in this hour she had just managed to read twelve pages. With a groan she realized that continuing at this pace she would need a rather long time to get through the whole thing. She wondered internally why Titus could not just tell her what was written in there, that would be bound to be faster but she had the feeling that asking him would be futile.

A guard waited for her at the elevator telling her that he was to escort her back to the throne room.

The ambassadors of all the clans were in the process of filing out of the room when they entered the floor and once they were gone Marie went into the throne room finding no one in the huge room but she noticed that the door to the balcony stood open.

Marie stepped onto the balcony shivering immediately at the strong cold wind meeting her there as Lexa stood on the balcony looking down on her city.

The commander had just announced to the ambassadors that a Skykru delegation as expected to arrive in the upcoming days and that she would open talk about travel and trade routes with them to all the ambassadors which were interested.

As she had expected the reactions to her announcement had been rather mixed. Only a very few number of clans had shown open interest in participating in such talks while others had also quite openly refused to even contemplate such offers. They had been so loud in their opposing opinion that they had really tested Lexa’s patience hard. She had been barely holding onto her patience before she would have just kicked one of them out of the balcony to make an example of them.

Lexa looked over at the girl now standing slightly behind shivering in the icy wind, she herself felt the wind was more refreshing than anything else.

“And what you have you learned so far?” the commander asked her voice still strained somehow.

Marie looked up at her with conflicted grey eyes as she shrugged “Titus has given me a journal to read and left me”. Her tone was not directly accusative but it was still clear that she was not satisfied with this kind of task.

Lexa sighed a small smile tugging at her lips, Titus had done exactly the same to her once she had advanced far enough in her training as a nightblood to be inaugurated into the secrets of the flame. She had felt the same impatience Marie must be feeling right now.

“And you will read it” Lexa commented nonchalantly.

Marie tilted her head slightly “Have you read it as well?” her face was showing open curiosity.

Lexa nodded “Yes, as a nightblood during my education. Aden and Thalu have also already read it”.

“Mmh” was Marie’s grumbled only reaction showing she still wished this part of her education would go over differently.

“How far have you come?” Lexa questioned trying to steer the girl from her discontent.

“Only around fifteen pages” Marie admitted her expression made it clear that she felt this to be rather inadequate.

Lexa squeezed the girl’s shoulders gently “You will get quicker with practise and once you stop questioning every word and just continue to read”.

She remembered ranting at Titus herself all those years back how one hour a day was not sufficient time to finish the book. She had difficulties to focus to continue to read and was distracted by her own thoughts trying continuously to analyse what she had just read. Her former teacher’s only advice had been to stop thinking and store away the information for further analysis later. This particular advice had proven rather helpful not just in regard to Becca’s journal but other aspects of dealing with political decisions.

Marie looked at her with calculating big eyes but the girl nodded after a moment of silent contemplation. Internally the girl was rather perplexed by the information that Lexa and probably all the other nightbloods before had been introduced to this journal exactly the same way, she had suspected Titus to do it this way in an attempt to spite her and to spent the least amount of time needed in her company.

“Where is Anya?” Marie wanted to know after a few moments of easy silence.

“Assembling a search for the Ice Nation nightblood” Lexa informed their charge in a calm tone before she added eyes sharper again “I do not want you to leave the tower without at least one guard with you at any time, is that clear?”

Marie nodded slightly taken aback by the instance in Lexa’s demeanour. Thus far she had never wandered around the streets of Polis on her own anyway so she doubted that she would in the immediate future.

The sound of the door to the throne room being pushed open again and Titus voice calling for the commander called them back into the throne room.

Titus was not alone but in the company of the other nightblood children. All of them smiled happily at Lexa and Marie before Titus bowed once to the commander and left.

Marie spotted one smaller boy hanging back slightly from the group in the back of the throne room his back turned to them looking at the closed doors in front of him.

It was obvious the children were happy to see their commander returned to them healthily. Lexa still remembered how all of her nightblood brothers and sisters had breathed easier again once the commander had returned from a journey unharmed indicating no need for an immediate conclave.

Lexa gave the younger children a few moments to express their relief at seeing her again before she walked through them over to the boy she knew must be Luna’s son.

When Lexa crouched down slightly in front of the boy he immediately backed away from her and with a frown she noticed a big black bruise on the left side of his still roundish face. His hair had the same reddish colour and was falling into his eyes in untamed wild curls, getting the hair braided if he choose to let it grow would be a nightmare with all those curls.

“You must be the new nightblood from the Boat People” Lexa approached him her voice gentle and she carefully kept her hands loosely beside her body “I am Lexa and you are?”

The boy’s eyes resembled his mother’s quite strongly, they had the same dark colour and shape “I am Boo” he whispered his voice tiny in the huge room. It was obvious he was afraid of her already and Lexa furrowed her brow unsure why the boy was afraid in the first place.

“I want to go home” Boo added his voice whiny and his dark eyes tearing up at his words.

Lexa sighed lowly trying to smile at the boy. It had been easier for her to be separated from her home, as her parents had been dead and she had still been younger than Boo was now.

“This will be your home now, Boo” she explained gently to the small boy. She knew that Boo would not see his mother anytime soon again, she doubted Luna would set foot into Polis again before she was not sure to be killed on the spot. But at least Luna’s reluctance to agree to this particular coalition law was justified now. Lexa had passed a law only two years ago that all nightblood children were to be brought to Polis for training as soon as their black blood was discovered or at the latest when they passed their third summer. Boo must have been three summers old back than already.

Lexa gently squeezed the boy’s bony shoulder ignoring how he tried to back away from her touch at first. She got up from facing the child and turned back to the other nightblood children. She was sure the boy would settle down soon enough once the homesickness wore off.

“So, what are the pillars of being a commander?” she asked addressing all her nightblood children and repeating a very basic lecture with them. She repeated all her lectures over and over again with them and she would do so now as well, Boo had never heard them after all. But it seemed that the boy was barely listening to her words, as his dark eyes kept on looking longingly at the door. She sighed and hoped she could actually do something to make the transition for the child any easier.

 

 

 

Chapter 98

When Anya returned to their quarters shortly before dusk the search had not made any progress. No one could definitely remember to have seen an Ice Nation girl which matched up to the description. Many vendors said they might have seen someone but no one was sure and there were no traces of unwanted guests.

But Polis was huge and not all citizens within Polis were completely unwaveringly loyal to the commander and after Lexa had established completely free travel it had gotten even harder to keep track of visitors to the city.

A lot of old structures of the old world still remained and were not in use and by thus it was nearly impossible to control and patrol every part of the city. That was why one of the previous commanders had a solid wall build around the original core of Polis to at least be able to get some sort of controllable perimeter.

They doubted Ontari would reside within the city walls but rather be staying in the edge of Polis. It was still questionable if the Ice Nation girl was alone in the city or who would help him.

Because of the lacking success to locate Ontari Anya’s mood was rather short when she returned.

Marie was sitting on the floor playing with Risha throwing a little ball for the cub to fetch. But the part where the cub was supposed to bring the ball back to Marie was still rather lacking and Risha preferred to have Marie run behind her to get the ball back.

Lexa had increased the guards around Clarke’s quarters just to be sure as well but the blonde Sky leader had not asked to see anyone. Alira had reported to the commander that Clarke had obviously not slept and barely touched any of her food.

The commander sat at the table brooding over maps trying to bring the place where the caravan of the Rock Line Clan had been robed into place. Something did still not add up but the Rock Line ambassador had been satisfied with the wares Lexa offered from Polis own storages. She had had to placate the Desert Clan ambassador which had been personally insulted by the unfounded accusation.

The girl was giggling out loud when the door snapped shut behind Anya. The general felt her own mood lighten momentarily at the sight of their charge.

“Anya” Marie chirped happily once she noticed that the general had returned as she had been gone for the complete day.

“As expected we could not find any traces of the Ice Nation nightblood” Anya reported to the commander.

“Look” Marie interrupted her immediately obviously excited about something.

Anya looked away from Lexa who had nodded at the unexpectedly news and returned her focus to her maps.

“What is it?” the general asked turning her attention to the girl in front of her.

Marie pulled out a second dagger from her thigh showing it to Anya proudly. The dagger strongly resembled the one she had already gotten from Lexa previously but what looked to a star had been carved into the dark wood of the handle.

Anya took the blade from the girl’s fingers carefully balancing the blade nodding approvingly at the flawless quality of the weapon. The blade was extremely sharp and if Marie took care of it, it would last her for a long time.

“It is very well crafted” she commented when she handed the dagger back to Marie “You should took good care of it to keep it that way”.

The girl immediately nodded with a smile on her features “Lexa gifted it to me”.

The general nodded with a slight smirk on her face as that had already been obvious to her and would not have needed mentioning at all. But she was glad to see the girl returned to her chirpy spirit no matter the reason.

Marie went into the bathroom a few moments later so Lexa turned to her former mentor. It was getting rather late and she did not have the chance before to discuss their sleeping arrangements yet.

“Marie should stay with me this night” Lexa suggested looking up from her maps and giving up to see what remained confusing for her for the day. If she stayed over the maps any longer she would just get a headache anyway.

Anya raised an eyebrow at the younger woman critically in silent question.

“If I am correct, I will face the same problem you did last night” Lexa explained and at Anya’s confused expression she added with a sigh “I think that Marie needs both of us present right now to really sleep, but we will see how this night goes over”.

Anya furrowed her brows “She should just sleep” she stated nonchalantly being sure that the girl’s problems with sleeping would vanish on their own with time.

Lexa laughed lightly “You know it won’t be this easy”.

“We cannot share quarters in the tower” Anya retorted obviously slightly annoyed.

“And why not?” Lexa asked critically. Of course it would be highly uncommon for a commander to share quarters with anyone but she still thought her sleeping arrangements were no one else’s business.

Anya just sighed and shook her head already recognizing in Lexa’s expression that the decision had already been made and no matter what she would say would not change the outcome. But it annoyed her that the younger woman might just be able to calm their charge better than she could.

When Marie returned Anya told her curtly “You will stay in Lexa’s quarters for the night” and with that she left without another word.

Marie watched the woman retreat with a furrowed brow her shoulders dropping considerably before she turned to Lexa “Did I do something wrong?”

The insecurities obvious in the girl’s small voice tugged at Lexa’s heart and she quickly reassured her that Anya was just tired after a long day and frustrated that their search had been unsuccessful.

Marie did not look completely convinced but she settled down in the bed willingly when Lexa asked her to.

Trying to get the girl asleep Lexa started to read a book of the old world to the girl named “Harry Potter and the Philosopher’s stone”.

It did not take long at all for Marie to fall asleep peacefully in Lexa’s arms.

True to Lexa’s prediction it did not take very long for the girl’s nightmares to resurface. The commander tried in vain to get Marie to sleep again.

“You want to see Anya, am I correct?” Lexa checked while gently wiping tears from the girl’s cheeks.

The expression when she nodded was miserable and Lexa squeezed the girl’s shoulders reassuringly telling her to stay in the bed and she would go and fetch Anya herself.

When Anya was startled awake after what felt like barely any sleep at all she confusedly searched for the dagger hidden beneath her pillow.

When her expression cleared after a few moments she sighed “Marie?”

“Of course” Lexa answered simply pointing for her general to come with her. Anya quickly gathered a few things she would be needing in the morning and followed the younger woman silently through the hall.

Marie was sitting up right in the bed when they entered and she hurled herself at Anya hugging the woman who looked rather perplexed strongly.

Anya stroked the girl’s fine hair now slightly curled being loose of the braids she had worn over the day.

Lexa silently thanked that her bed had an enormous size and they comfortably fit into it together with enough space to turn around and settle to sleep.

Lexa’s hypothesis regarding Marie’s nightmares was proven when the girl did not wake once more at all through the whole night feeling secured by both of their presences.

Anya resigned herself silently to the fact that all of them would be sharing the commander’s quarters for the unforeseeable future. The only other positive side she found in this was the fact that Lexa now would not be alone as well making her harder to target for an assassination attempt.

Alira was noticeably confused when she received the order in the morning to move some things of Anya and Marie into Lexa’s quarters for now. The handmaiden braided Lexa’s and Marie’s hair quickly for both of them before she went to carry out the orders.

“We move into your quarters?” Marie questioned Lexa during breakfast with a frown.

Lexa brushed off the girl’s worries “Only for the time until you sleep better”.

Marie ducked her head with a crestfallen expression “I don’t want to cause anymore bother…” she looked down at her knees at the words.

With a finger under her chin Lexa guided the girl’s back up to look into her grey eyes “You are not” she reassured her intently.

Marie smiled a watery smile at her until Anya also squeezed her shoulders in additional confirmation.

The morning was spent together with Anya in the streets of Polis searching for traces of the Ice Nation nightblood. Marie had been unsure of how such a search looked like but it involved a lot of questioning of citizens and vendors.

Lexa in the meantime was occupied long until after midday with several meetings between different ambassadors.

Marie was pouting slightly that there was still no snow to be seen. But Anya reassured the girl quickly that eventually there would be snow, the girl’s childish exited impatience was slightly amusing.

Risha was accompanying them through the streets and Alira had been true in her prediction and the little cub won the hearts over from anyone they met in no time at all.

At mealtime Anya steered the girl to the market. The market still bustled with people although it was obvious that the temperatures had dropped already and everyone was dressed in much warmer clothes.

Marie happily tried different roasted meats from the vendors and watched how Risha was totally overjoyed with all the different smells. The vendors seemed unable to resist the cub’s natural charm and cuteness and soon some of them actually waited to offer little bits of meats to the animal making a small competition out of which bite the cub would choose.

Afterwards Anya guided them back to the tower. They had been outside for the whole morning and the cub would probably already be tired out.

Lexa had asked Anya in the morning to shortly visit Clarke just to check if the Sky leader was settling in well and feeling fine or if she needed anything. Anya had just looked at Lexa sceptically “Why don’t you do it yourself?” she had asked. “I am busy” Lexa had retorted defensively. The older woman had of course looked right through the lie and after a silent glare Lexa sighed “I don’t think she would admit if she needed anything to me”. The general had huffed but agreed in the end.

So now they were on the way to the quarters which had been assigned to Clarke for her stay. On the way into the elevator they met Titus and the man told Marie to go down to read her hour right now.

Anya nodded to the girl that it was alright to go and that she would bring her cub up as well.

Marie was slightly more enthusiastic than the day before to go down into the dungeons with Titus actually being interested in the book and what had really happened when the old world ended.

Anya curtly nodded on Clarke’s door, the guards still standing outside a clear indication that the girl had not left the room yet. When there came no response after a moment Anya pushed the door open anyway entering without permission.

The door to Clarke’s balcony stood wide open and the icy wind blew into the room, no fire was burning in the fire place.

Anya frowned at the fire place quickly holding her hands above the remaining embers finding them completely cold indicating that the fire must have gone out a pretty long time ago and it was as cold in the room as outside. With practiced hands Anya had a fire blazing in the fire pit again only moments later.

The general knew that Clarke could only be outside on the balcony so there was no hurry to search for her.

She let her eyes scan the room momentarily taking in the completely untouched plate of food. The furs looked ruffled up but that was no indication how long or well the girl had slept.

Anya shortly took a glance into the connected bathroom finding the bath filled with water still which was completely cold and looked unused.

The general stepped out on the balcony her heart skipping a beat when she spotted Clarke sitting on the edge her legs dangling over the edge dangerously.

“Is this some kind of strange habit of Sky people?” Anya inquired nonchalantly keeping her tone light. She hovered slightly behind Clarke should her appearance startle the girl, she knew Lexa would be less than pleased if the girl fell from the tower into her sure death.

Clarke indeed did startle slightly and Anya quickly grabbed a firm hold of her arms and hurled the girl completely down from the edge. Her skin was ice cold to the touch and she only wore a thin undershirt and trousers. Her blue eyes looked alarmingly haunted and lost.

Anya shook her head at such foolishness steering the younger woman inside and pushing her down on the bed where Risha had already made herself at home closing the door to the balcony firmly.

The general stood in front of Clarke who still sat in the same position Anya had pushed her onto the bed staring at nothing.

“Do you want to die?” she critically asked the young woman.

Her blue eyes snapped up at Anya live returning to them immediately “I do not deserve to die!” her voice was raised and it was clear how agitated she felt.

The general stared down at her questioningly completely unfazed by her outburst “And why is that?”

“There is so much blood on my hands …” Clarke pressed out through clenched teeth pulling her knees up to her chest.

Anya rolled her eyes at the younger woman “Than learn to live with it. Sitting here wallowing in self-pity won’t make it better” and she added after a moment “Being angry at the world and Lexa won’t help either”.

Clarke sighed dejectedly grabbing her legs more firmly as she started to shiver against the sudden temperature change as the fire started to warm the air around them.

Anya grabbed a fur from the bed and wrapped it around the woman’s body picking up a mug with watered wine and firmly shoving into her hands with the barked command “Drink!”

How the girl had survived several weeks on her own in the wilderness and now seemed to be completely incapable of taking care of herself was a complete mystery to Anya. She watched silently leaning against the wall next to the bed how Clarke indeed drank down the watered down wine without even so much as a grimace at the bitter taste.

“I know that I have no one to be angry at but myself” the young woman said lowly once she had drained the whole cup.

“That is progress at least” Anya commented her brows furrowed. She had seen the stages of grief already in many different people and knew that Clarke needed to pull through somehow so that she could get better again.

Clarke looked up at the other woman snorting mutely and shaking her head. She had no idea why she had even wanted to come to Polis, but staying at the Ark had been a completely unbearable prospect.

She just now spotted the wolf cub she knew Marie had adopted rolled together in the furs next to her. With the ghost of a smile washing over her face she carefully let her fingers glide through the animal’s soft fur. Risha perked up at the attention and leaned into the touch dramatically.

“You need to do something other than sit here and stare at the walls” Anya added still staring down at the young woman.

Clarke looked up at her and the hopelessness on her face was so raw even Anya felt sympathy for her. “And what?” the young leader asked dejectedly “Killing seems to be the only thing I am good at…”

Anya shook her head again taking a deep breath knowing that snapping at the stubborn blonde would probably not work now. “You can do anything you want” Anya choose to say ignoring the last statement all together for now.

“There is a huge library in the tower” Anya started her suggestions “You could even start by going out into the streets and getting to know something of Polis”.

Clarke firmly shook her head “I don’t want to hear them thank me for what I had to do”.

Anya pinched the bridge of her nose her annoyance flaring up minutely but she took a few deep breath before she tried to reason with the woman again “Than go to the healers and help them. Skilled hands are always welcomed”.

“How can hands that brought such destruction heal now?” Clarke retorted tears gathering in her blue eyes. Risha tapped her paw against Clarke’s thigh at the loss of attention and it brought a watery smile on her features.

Anya huffed out an annoyed breath as she felt completely inadequate to talk sense into the girl. She knew that she could say whatever she wanted, Clarke had to want to do something. But she needed a purpose and that urgently and she needed to be moved into quarters that did not have any balcony or better yet one without windows, she did not trust Clarke not to suddenly jump out when her mood hit the bottom.

The general pushed away from the wall. “Come with me” she ordered simply and although visibly confused Clarke followed her without question.

The guards watched with furrowed brows how Clarke seemed to stumble behind the general. Anya led Clarke to the elevator bringing her up to the highest floor. She knew that the only other quarter which was unoccupied at the moment did not possess a balcony and the sole window was too small for Clarke to squeeze through.

Fortunately on the way there they ran into Alira “Can you bring Clarke things up here and sent the lead healer up as well?”

The older handmaiden nodded quickly checking them over for visible injuries before she left.

Clarke looked around the new room with barely any interest. The wolf cub padding around the room and sniffing the inventory was obviously more interesting to watch.

Barely a moment later had a knock sounded on the door and an old woman stood at the entrance “Laurel, thank you for coming. Clarke is versed in the art of healing and needs somethings to occupy her mind” Anya introduced to the lead healer.

The woman’s skin was already wrinkled with age, her brown hair grey in a few places but her bright eyes were still sharp and she nodded taking in the emptiness in the younger woman’s features and the way she carried herself. Word had spread through the tower quickly who the commander’s personal guest was exactly and Laurel knew she must be important to the commander to be granted this honour.

The general quickly thanked her for her assistance and left them to it certain that Marie would also be returning any moment now.

 

 

 

Chapter 99

The next three days went over pretty quickly. It was obvious that Marie was feeling better with every hour passing after their return.

Sharing a bed with Anya and Lexa together also greatly helped in fending off the girl’s nightmares. She still woke up at least once per night but she let herself be calmed down again quickly so that she was still well rested at the next morning.

They had been in Polis now for four days. Three of them Anya had spent mostly occupied with organizing the guards and repeating the gruelling task to determine their loyalty. In addition the general personally helped patrolling the streets.

Marie found patrolling the streets rather boring and had begged Anya to be allowed to stay inside of the tower instead. The weather had not warmed again and the temperature had dropped so low that the girl was able to see her breath every time she stepped outside no matter which time it was.

Accompanying Lexa to meetings was not fun at all for the girl as well. She only liked those meetings which were opened to all citizens. The other ones where just ambassadors were present were boring and Marie wondered how Lexa could listen to the adults squabbling amongst them worse than children.

On a positive note Titus had officially allowed her to spend some time with the nightblood children each day in the afternoon after their own training was finished for the day. But Marie was rather convinced that Lexa had probably just ordered that anyway as it was still obvious that the flamekeeper’s opinion of her had not changed in the slightest.

Risha usually accompanied her to the nightblood children and the others absolutely adored the cub. Marie was slightly envious of the attention the small animal got from the others already feeling that they only had asked to see her to see Risha again but she would not admit to that out loud.

On this morning the first snowflakes had finally fallen from the sky and Marie had squealed excitedly at the sight. Her excitement was baffled somewhat when Anya told her that she would be busy at the guard house for most of the day and this time Marie was not allowed to join her. Lexa was also swept up with meetings promising the obviously disappointed girl to try to make some time later in the day to go out with her at least shortly.

So Marie now trudged through the halls of the tower with a pout on her face looking outside longingly every time she passed a window. Gustus had a few days of his duty to visit his wife who had supposedly fallen ill, so there was no one left to take her outside right now. The commander had offered that she could go out with any guard she wanted, but that would not be the same, Marie wanted to share the experience with one of them and not a guard she did not even know.

Stopping in front of the door to Clarke’s quarters Marie knocked on the door waiting to hear if the older girl was there or not. She did not hear a verbal answer but Marie thought she had heard movement inside so she carefully pushed the door open and Risha immediately pushed her muzzle through the barely opened door slipping inside on silent paws, for some reason the cub seemed to like Clarke rather well.

The blonde sat on the huge bed knees pulled up to her chest balancing a heavy book on her legs. She had obviously not even heard them enter.

“Risha wanted to visit you” Marie offered with an innocent look once Clarke did notice them her blue eyes narrowing at the unwanted intrusion. The girl plopped down on the mattress beside Clarke peering at what the older girl was reading.

“It is snowing outside” Marie commented once Clarke had turned back to reading not minding the girl sitting next to her at all, but her fingers stroked through Risha’s soft fur.

Clarke looked up shortly her brow furrowing before her attention returned to the book without saying a word.

Marie huffed “I am bored”.

“I can see that” Clarke commented darkly. She was still not feeling like having company and although she did not have anything against Marie she would prefer more silent solitude. She had started to go down to the lead healer who resided in the middle of tower and helped the older woman taking inventory of all of her supplies learning what ointments they produced as she did so. Clarke knew it was a rather senseless task and strongly assumed it to be a task solely made up for her but she was rather grateful for the few hours of reprieve from her own thoughts it offered to her. The old healer had a lot of books in her possession describing some healing techniques Clarke had never heard off before and Laurel had offered her to take a book with her up to her quarters to read if she pleased and now she was interrupted by Marie.

After a few silent moments Marie got the hint that Clarke was unwilling to do something with her so the girl sighed and got up from the bed again. “Traitor” she muttered lowly when she spotted Risha soundly asleep under Clarke’s tender loving care. But without any clear destination in mind Marie left the cub with Clarke knowing that Risha would return to their quarters later on anyway.

Marie trailed through the halls letting her fingertips glide against the cold walls as she did so humming softly to herself earning a few rather confused stares from the guards posted around the tower.

When Marie the elevator stopped on the level reserved for the nightbloods she was surprised to see Boo moving to the stairs leading down.

The boy’s curly hair hung low into his dark eyes and he did not even look up as he silently padded down the stairs being cautious not to be noticed by the guards. Marie furrowed her brow when she spotted a knapsack slung over the boy’s small shoulder.

She had tried to get the smaller boy to talk to her the last three days but he seemed to be completely unwilling to spend any time with any of them preferring to just hide in his bed as soon as they were let out of their lessons.

Marie quickly thought on what to do. The bruise she had seen on Boo’s face was according to Aden not from a training session and the girl had frowned at the older boy until he admitted that Titus could sometimes be rather rough with them if he was just annoyed enough. She did not want to get the small boy into trouble by alerting the guards to what looked to be like an escape attempt. She felt sorry for him as it was obvious he felt terribly homesick and she guessed he tried to return to his family.

Making a quick decision Marie signalled the elevator to move down to the base level of the tower where she quickly moved into a small niche not visible from the stairs and then she simply waited.

When Boo finally returned a guard shift was obviously taking place. To Marie’s horror it gave Boo who still much smaller than her the perfect opportunity to slip from the tower completely undetected while she had to wait a few moments, which seemed like a whole eternity to her, to finally be able to follow behind him.

Once outside Marie was momentarily distracted by the white swirls of snow whirling around her in the air, it had snowed enough yet for the ground to be covered but it still looked amazing. Boo’s red curly hair was easy to spot and as he turned around a corner out of view Marie hurried behind the younger boy not thinking twice on what she was doing.

Marie immediately slung her arms around herself regretting not wearing a coat at the moment. She was shivering quiet strongly when she finally caught up with Boo.

“Hey!” she addressed him making the boy stop dead in his tracks and whirl around. Boo’s features turned ghostly white and his dark eyes were widened when he recognized Marie for who she was.

“I … I …” Boo stuttered out obviously thinking hard on a reason to explain why he was outside alone, the security for the nightbloods had been increased as well and they were also prohibited from leaving the tower on their own.

“You can’t run away like that” Marie simply said smiling down sadly at the boy.

“I wasn’t” Boo was quick to reassure even though the tips of his ears turned slightly red.

Marie raised her brow and pointed at the knapsack “I don’t know the lands around Polis very well but I doubt you would reach your family on your own”.

The boy’s features turned dark and tears gathered in his eyes “I won’t to go home! I hate it here! I don’t want to become evil!”

Marie tilted her head slightly confused by the last statement “Polis is not that bad and why evil?”

“All commanders are evil” the boy proclaimed his voice strong with conviction.

Marie furrowed her brow arms akimbo angrily “Lexa is not!” she retorted strongly.

“But I want to go home” Boo said again his voice now closer to tears “I want to see nomon and Adria…” Tears now welled up in his dark eyes and Marie felt her own anger evaporate being replaced by sympathy for Boo.

“How about I show you the stables?” the girl tried in an attempt to lighten the boy’s mood. She was sure Boo would be in trouble when they returned to the tower so cheering him up now would not worsen the punishment.

The boy looked up at her with big eyes wiping at his tears before he nodded. The Boat People did not own horses themselves and thus he was pretty unfamiliar with the animals but he was fascinated by them and had heard that the stables of the commander only held the best war horses of all clans.

Marie smiled reassuringly at him and took his hand leading the way to the stables. On the way Marie retold to him how she had met Lexa’s black mare and was now allowed to visit when she wished to. Boo was clearly impressed by the tale and he seemed to have forgotten his plan to run away all together for now.

Lexa’s white mare seemed nervous but neighed happily at her visitors and Marie immediately stroked over her silky mane thinking that the horse was probably frustrated from being caged inside. Boo’s eyes were shining with wonder when the mare sniffed at him and he cautiously touched the horse’s nose being surprised by the silky texture.

Suddenly Boo looked up biting at his lip “I need to go back before Titus comes to collect us for dinner” and with that the boy turned and sprinted from the stables.

Marie silently hoped the boy was truly going back into the tower. She made to follow him when she noticed what appeared to be dark blood on the straw between the horses’ pens.

With a furrowed brow and cautiously grabbing a dagger in one hand Marie followed the trail just now noticing the absence of anyone actually working at the stables with a frown.

Suddenly a form jumped at her and Marie was completely unprepared for the attacker’s strength. She felt a hand fisting in her hair ripping her head back painfully before her forehead connected with something solid, she felt her fingers slipping on the dagger, the weapon falling into the straw uselessly and everything turned black.

Anya felt the frustration of the last days buzzing in her veins, she had personally never enjoyed being cooped up in the city preferring the woods where she had been born. None of their searches had come up with any trace or even absolute proof that there indeed was a young Ice Nation woman within the walls of the city. She would have preferred taking Marie out right away in the morning but she had already scheduled to evaluate the volunteers for Lexa’s private unit and as some of them had travelled to Polis exactly for that purpose she could not simply tell them to wait a day longer.

After making a quick round through the streets Anya returned to the tower for lunch. She used the elevator to first seek out Lexa and as she had anticipated the commander was still holed up in the throne room.

“Where is Marie?” Anya asked after the last ambassador had filed out of the room leaving only Lexa flanked by Ryder and Titus in the huge room.

“I don’t know” Lexa answered studying Anya’s drawn features intently “Maybe she is with Clarke or with the nightbloods”.

“The nightbloods are studying without her” Titus said having brought the conclave to the library only an hour ago himself and knowing that the girl had not been among them.

“Have Clarke summoned here and ask the other guards if anyone has seen my second leave” Lexa ordered to a guard standing at the entrance to the throne room, the man nodded and left with quick strides.

Anya looked out onto the balcony and noticed that the snow had turned stronger and the wind had picked up. A thought occurred to her, it was still possible that Marie had left the tower without permission to finally experience her long awaited snow. She direly hoped that the girl had not disobeyed them so blatantly but she was still a child and a curious one at that so it was still possible.

Clarke was led into the throne room a few moments later and to Anya’s surprise Marie’s wolf cub was with her. The blonde leader looked slightly nervous to be summoned to the throne room as her blue eyes took in the new surroundings.

“You wished to see me” she said her voice taking on a hint of anger at being summoned at all.

Lexa nodded but remained sitting on her throne “Have you seen Marie?”

The blonde furrowed her brow “A few hours ago, but she left on her own again. Risha had fallen asleep on the bed”.

The commander nodded “The Skykru delegation is scheduled to arrive today”

Clarke nodded having counted the days herself but she did not know why that concerned herself.

Lexa waited if Clarke would react to her people coming to Polis but except the nod that she understood there was nothing.

“If you wish to partake…” Lexa offered but Clarke cut her off.

The blonde shook her head with a resolute expression “I don’t wish to partake. I am not a leader to Skykru anymore”.

Lexa ground her teeth together at being interrupted like that and she raised a critical brow at the other woman “You will always be their leader” she stated simply.

“I ran away, Lexa” Clarke retorted anger rising in her blue eyes again.

“That does not change the …” Lexa started to try to reason with the blonde but Clarke cut her off again.

“I wish to be left alone” Clarke assured more forcefully “If that is all, I’d like to return to my room, I am tired”. Her blue eyes lost most of their ferocity at the last statement.

Lexa sighed lowly but she nodded “It is your choice, Clarke. If you change your mind, the meeting will take place here”.

The commander watched the blonde leave the room in silence. Shortly after the door fell shut behind her it was opened again by the guard “No one has seen your second leave the tower, Heda”.

Lexa nodded and dismissed him. Anya furrowed her brow “I will look in your quarters” worry was taking root within her. It was uncharacteristic for the girl to seek solitude in the hours of the day.

“I will escort the conclave to their lunch” Titus announced and after receiving a nod from the commander the flamekeeper swept out of the room.

Lexa remained sitting in her throne lost deep in thought. Laurel had spoken to her in the morning about Clarke and; added up to what Anya had reported; Clarke’s state of mind worried her deeply. She had hoped to be able to help the other young leader but she knew that Clarke would not take any advice from her at the moment. She had noticed how Clarke had refrained from labelling anything beginning with the room and the bed as her own. She hoped that Clarke just needed time to heal her mind but she knew that some warriors never recovered from the mental wounds of battle.

She knew that there would never be a real possibility of running from the duties of a leader. Lexa was aware that her own people would surely kill her for treason should she ever attempt such an act. But she doubted that Clarke would ever cease being a leader, a small part of her envied Clarke for the chance to get a reprieve she herself would never get.

The commander was pulled out of her thoughts when the doors to the throne room were pushed open again. Titus entered shoving Boo in front of him with an angry sneer on his face.

Lexa thinned her lips when the boy stumbled in his steps at another hard shove to his small frame. The boy looked to be totally afraid of what was happening.

“Titus, that shall be enough” Lexa interjected before the man could shove the small boy again.

“Boo can tell you something about the whereabouts of your second” the flamekeeper retorted looking down at the boy pointedly.

The boy gnawed at his lips his expression the very image of guilt “Marie … she … stopped me …” the boy’s voice was shaking strongly and he was inching away from the throne.

“She stopped you from what, Boo?” Lexa asked her voice calm and her face open.

“From running away” the boy whispered almost too low to catch the words.

Lexa pinched the bridge of her nose nodding with a mute sigh. She had been aware that the boy had not settled in yet, but she had been unaware just how much Boo wished to return home. If the small boy had succeeded in leaving the protected walls of Polis he would have probably died long before he could have reached the sea, either freezing to death at night, being killed by a predator or starving, if he would have found the way at all.

 

 

Chapter 100

Lexa exhaled a deep breath calming herself forcefully. It was obvious Boo was terrified enough of her already lashing out at him in anger would only worsen the situation now. She could not hold it against the small child to be homesick but she also could not remember any of her other nightblood children to actually try to flee from Polis.

The boy was fidgeting in front of her biting down on his lip strongly and barely met her eye at all.

Titus did not look surprised at the boy’s admission so Lexa concluded that the flamekeeper had already heard him admit to what had happened. The commander hoped the boy had made the admission on his own free will without being forced.

But that also meant that Marie indeed had left the tower on her own. How both children had managed to slip around the guards without detection was beyond her and such failure to their duty angered the commander deeply. If two children were able to slip from the tower unnoticed it would still be able to enter in the same fashion.

Anya returned to the throne room a moment later the sound of the door opening again startling Boo making him jump in place.

The general shook her head “She is not in your quarters and her coat is still there as well” a slight worry was detectable on her face.

“Boo, when have you met Marie?” the commander questioned the child. If the girl had left her coat leaving the tower had at least obviously not been planned.

The boy looked up at her with uncertainty written on his roundish face “I don’t know. I was back before the flamekeeper brought us to the library. Marie showed me your horses”.

The boy’s dark eyes glittered at the mention of the animals, he was obviously as fascinated with them as Marie tented to be.

“Maybe she is still within the stables” Lexa guessed addressing Anya. They both knew how much their charge adored their mounts and it was easy for a child to lose the track of time. The general nodded already turning around and striding from the room again to search for Marie there.

“Titus, bring Boo back to the others to have lunch” she instructed her voice calm “I will speak with you alone at a later time, Boo”. She would need to make sure that the boy trying to run away from Polis did not happen again but Lexa was aware that Boo first needed to feel more at home in the city.

The small boy visibly gulped but nodded and hurried behind the serene flamekeeper.

Anya hurried down to the base of the tower, she had brought Marie’s coat with her. If the girl was still within the stables she had been there for some time now and the general grimaced at the prospect of the girl falling sick again due to her own foolishness.

When the general reached the stables she called out, but no one answered. With a frown Anya entered the stables, it was unusual for the place to be deserted completely. Her own horse was trampling in its paddock clearly unsettled and Anya quickly calmed the steed down wondering what had upset her mount in the first place.

All of Lexa’s horses seemed rather unsettled as well but she knew that they would not be calmed by her. When Anya turned around from her brown steed she noticed a trail of what appeared to be blood in the straw on the ground.

She followed the trail and found a heap of straw. Anya brushed some of the straw away and cursed under her breath when she found a barely hidden corpse. She recognized the corpse for the boy who was a second at the commander’s stables and his throat had obviously been slit.

When she stepped back the heel of one of her boots connected with something solid on the ground. Bending down Anya picked up a dagger, recognizing it as one of Marie’s weapons immediately.

Her heart sank into her stomach at the realisation that Marie was obviously not here anymore and judging from the traces in front of her a struggle had taken place here. Anya looked around the stables some more and found fresh blood sticking to a bar and she just now realized that one of the paddocks was empty, one of the commander’s horses missing. So whoever had been here had also stolen a horse by thus gaining the advantage of a faster travel.

Anya quickly left the stables clutching Marie’s weapon in her hand, cursing both herself and Lexa for leaving the girl unsupervised in the first place. Her thoughts were running wild as her blood ran cold, whoever had taken Marie had an undefined head start and  they had no idea when the girl had been taken or by who and thus where she could have been taken.

Once she entered the tower Anya barked at the guards to lock down the tower and the inner circle of Polis although she knew there was only a very slim chance that Marie was being kept somewhere within the walls of Polis.

The guards sprang into action immediately with the way the general’s expression promised a painful death to anyone who would stand in her way right now.

When Anya entered the floor which held the throne room Titus tried to block her from entering the room.

“Move out of my way, flamekeeper!” Anya loudly hissed at the man not standing for his attitude at the moment.

“The Skykru delegation has arrived, Heda is not to be disturbed” Titus sternly retorted meeting her gaze with calm dark eyes.

Anya growled at the man and physically shoved him from the door making the man stumble against the wall and before he could try to block her again she opened the heavy door herself and strode in.

All eyes were already on her when she entered, the commotion she had caused had probably been audible through the closed doors. Anya quickly registered that Charles Pike was also part of the Skykru group with a frown.

Lexa felt her throat tighten painfully at seeing Anya return alone without their charge and the dagger clutched in the general’s hand did not promise any good news.

The conversation they had been engaged in had stopped completely and Lexa ignored the Skykru delegation for now “What have you found?” she tried to keep her voice steady but even to her own eyes it sounded faltering.

“A second working at the stable with a slit throat, signs of a struggle, one of your horses missing and this” Anya quickly reported stepping closer to Lexa and handing over the dagger. The commander immediately recognized it to be her own dagger she had gifted to Marie weeks ago, she clenched her fingers around the handle strongly. Involuntarily memories of finding Costia’s head within their shared bed flashed up in her mind.

Any indication who took her?” Lexa questioned shooing the memories from her mind and the general shook her head.

Titus who had followed inside the room after Anya and had listened to their conversation had a calculating look on his face “Are you even sure she was taken?”

Anya’s eyes blazed angrily as she whirled around to face him and glared at the man “What is it you imply?!”

“Taken?” Markus Kane echoed as Titus had switched to English making it possible for them to follow the conversation.

“Who was taken?” Bellamy chimed in worry tinting his voice “Clarke?”

Titus was staring back at Anya unfazed and the open accusation that Marie could have been the one to steal a horse and run away was plain on his face.

“Enough!” Lexa roared to Anya and Titus on both sides, she did not wish to believe that Titus obviously truly thought Marie capable of such an act “No this does not concern Clarke, but Marie”.

Charles Pike sneered “Did you not say the girl was under your protection?”

Anya actually growled at the man in response while Lexa did not deem that worthy of an articulate response. Internally she cursed the timing of the abduction with Skykru being here she could not leave Polis, not even for Marie. The ambassadors would never talk to Skykru without her there to mediate between them.

Lexa turned her sole attention to Anya holding her brown eyes reflecting the worry and inner turmoil she herself felt “Gather a search party and find here”.

Anya nodded with a solemn expression both of them aware that the general would not return before she had found their charge.

Lexa watched Anya go with a heavy heart desperately praying to any higher power that may exist to see Marie return to them alive and unharmed. If her worst fear was confirmed and Marie was already in Nia’s hands she was aware that the girl was as good as dead already.

 

Marie woke suddenly to the sensation of falling. With a pained groan she actually connected with solid ground. She was disoriented for a few moments feeling a sickening crack in her left shoulder at the impact. Her hands were firmly tied behind her back and something was covering her eyes making it impossible to see where she was.

She heard movements to her right side and tried to crawl away from the origin thinking that it was whoever had knocked her out. Marie confusedly noted that her trousers were starting to get damp at the knees although it did not seem to rain.

Suddenly someone grabbed the bindings tying her hands together pulling her onto her feet forcefully. Marie let out a little pained groan at the jostling movement in her shoulder, she hoped nothing was broken but the intensity of the pain was making it hard to focus on anything but the pulsing pain.

“Don’t struggle, you won’t escape me” a voice suddenly hissed into her ears, the voice sounded threatening and cold.

Marie tried to twist out of the grasp pulling her along on instinct anyway, but it was obvious she was physically no match to her abductor. The girl stumbled blindly behind her abductor many times almost falling over when her feet slipped on the slight dusting of snow beneath her feet. The hands pulling at her had to intercept her almost falls a few times until suddenly her abductor fell down with her and Marie heard a pained groan coming from another mouth.

“Could you be any less clumsy?!” her abductor sounded angry once she was pulled roughly to her feet again.

“I can’t see” Marie retorted truthfully. It had been hard enough to stumble through the woods when Anya had her practice without looking at the ground every few seconds but now that she was completely blinded there was no way of predicting on what she would step next and her abductor pulled her along at a quick pace which did not help the matter at all.

Judging from the timbre of her abductors voice Marie actually was pretty sure that she was female.

Her abductor hissed a string of curse words, or Marie guessed them to be curse words from the tone, but she did not understand the actual words.

Her suspicion was confirmed when suddenly the blindfold was ripped down. Marie blinked a few times against the sudden light looking up at her abductor for the first time.

What Marie noticed right away were the scars marking the girl’s face. She gulped forcibly making the connection internally between the dark blood she had seen and the obvious Ice Nation scars. It seemed she had found the Ice Nation nightblood or rather she had been found by her.

“You are Ontari, aren’t you?” Marie addressed the older girl her voice trembling slightly. Speaking up had obviously been a bad move, as soon as the words had left her mouth, her head was whipped to the sight by the impact of a strong slap to her face.

Marie looked back at Ontari with widened eyes tears gathering in them immediately at the sting now blooming in her cheek. The girl’s dark eyes were glittering angrily “How do you know my name?” she questioned roughly grabbing Marie’s arms in a bruising grip giving her a shake.

“Ouch” Marie let out through clenched teeth “That hurts!”

Ontari’s fingers only tightened around her upper arms before she shook her jostling her already hurt shoulder, making Marie gulp for air against the pain cursing through left side.

“Roan” Marie said through clenched teeth trying to stop herself from crying out.

Ontari let out another string of curse words before she shook her head and roughly pulled at Marie’s bound hands forcing the girl to fall into step behind her.

They seemed to walk for hours and the longer they walked the colder Marie felt. It was still snowing and the wind had picked up, the thin shirt she was wearing did nothing to fend of the biting chill at all.

Marie had lost complete track of where they were, she did not even know for sure in which direction she was dragged. With a sinking heart Marie realized that due to the snow they did not leave any real traces. She must have been gone from Polis for hours already and she silently wondered if Anya and Lexa had already noticed that she was missing and if they were searching for her already.

She wished she could turn back the time now and just stop Boo from leaving the tower all together, she would have never run into Ontari if she had not followed the boy.

Being cold, hungry, in pain and overall miserable Marie wished for nothing more than to be back in Polis, safe inside the tower and a lone tear slid down her cheek at the thought of Lexa and Anya.

Suddenly Ontari lurched her in another direction and Marie barely managed not to fall at the unexpected change in direction.

Marie had no idea where Ontari wanted them to go, but it was clear the girl had a destination in mind.

A few minutes later Marie recognized what Ontari had obviously seen long before her, the entrance to a cave, hidden well by a cliff.

The older girl roughly shoved her inside “Try to run and I will start by taking fingers” she threatened with a sneer and a glint in her dark eyes that assured Marie it was not an empty threat.

Marie quickly shook her head mutely assuring the other girl she would not try to escape. Ontari forcefully pushed her down sitting on the cold ground before the girl started to make a fire.

It was clear that the cave had been used before. There was an older fire pit and even stored fire wood and a few other basic supplies.

Marie unobtrusively inched closer to the fire once Ontari had succeeded in starting it.

When Ontari caught her movements out of the corner of her eyes she whirled around “Don’t move!” she barked at her voice commanding and cold.

Marie nodded immediately slumping down again feeling her shoulder give a painful lurch with her hands bound behind her back.

“Where will you bring me?” Marie asked not really expecting an answer at all and at the same time not sure if she actually wanted to know. She had heard enough of the Ice Nation queen Nia to know that she never wanted to meet her without Lexa’s protection.

But to her inner horror the other girl’s response was instant “To my queen” she said watching the younger girl with calculating eyes for her expression.

Marie sucked in a harsh breath starting to shake from more than just the cold still clinging uncomfortably to her skin.

Ontari snorted under her breath at the girl’s obvious fear almost rejoicing in it, but Marie noted with a frown how the older girl seemed to sway needing to shoot out a hand against a wall to hold herself up. The girl’s other hand pressed against her side her features twisting with obvious pain and when she let go Marie could see the blood coating her fingers.

“You are bleeding” Marie stated the obvious a tinge of worry in her voice. They must have been gone from Polis for hours and if the other girl was still bleeding the wound must have been pretty deep. But she also recognized that she might be able to slip away if the nightblood fell unconscious.

Ontari just mutely glared at her with a sneer on her features. The older girl took a dagger from a holster holding it to the fire.

While she waited for the blade to heat up to seal the wound shut Marie could see Ontari shrugging out of her armour and lifting her shirt.

The shirt was black as well so it was impossible to judge if it was drenched in blood or not but judging from the relatively strong trickle of blood running down her side Marie guessed she must have lost a lot of blood already. The wound did not look really long but was probably a stab wound from another dagger.

“Ontari!” Marie suddenly exclaimed in a high pitched voice as the older girl fell over obviously truly losing consciousness.

There was no response but Marie noted that the girl had been lucky and just lay beside the fire and not like Marie had thought falling into the fire.

When the older girl did not move at all for a few moments Marie let out a shuddering breath. She needed to get rid of the bindings on her hands.

She had seen Ontari lay down a sword within a scabbard with her armour. Cautiously Marie struggled to stand up, her legs felt almost numb out of a mixture of pure exhaustion and being exposed to the cold for a prolonged time without sufficient clothing.

Marie kept an eye on Ontari to be sure the girl did not suddenly wake up again, but all she could see was that the black blood slowly oozing from her wound formed a small puddle beneath her on the ground.

Carefully Marie crouched down above the sword fumbling blindly to get it out of the scabbard proofed harder than she had anticipated with hands bound on her back. It seemed to take her a long time to finally get the sword out its scabbard and Marie could not help shooting glances at Ontari’s form every few seconds to be sure she would not suddenly spring up again.

Marie later had no idea how she had managed to cut the bindings, but she did manage. In addition she also cut into the flesh above the bindings prompting a pained hiss from her mouth before she got the angle correct. When she finally had her hands freed Marie cautiously inspected her wrists. Her hands and arms immediately started to tingle uncomfortably once the blood could circulate normally again and she noticed with a slight horror that she already had rubbed her skin raw beneath the coarse rope.

Quickly checking once again that the older nightblood was still unconscious Marie took the sword and slung the scabbard across her chest before she followed her instincts and did what they told: “RUN!”

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

Chapter 11: Chapter 101 - 110

Chapter Text

Chapter 101

Marie exited the cave in a sprint running without any real direction just with the purpose of getting as much distance between her and the hopefully still unconscious Ontari. Her heart was hammering strongly in her chest and blood rushed loudly in her ears.

After a few minutes Marie slowed down, she was not used to this icy temperature and the cold air left a burning pain in her lungs making it nearly impossible to take another breath. With wide eyes and a sinking heart she looked around herself taking in the surroundings for the first time since running from the cave.

It was snowing pretty heavily now and the white puffy snowflakes were wiped around her in a strong breeze. The air bit at her skin trough the thin material of the shirt and Marie now felt herself shivering again and she slung her arms around her body in a futile attempt to get warmer her left shoulder promptly reminding her harshly of the injury.

Looking around Marie realized forlornly that she had absolutely no idea where she was. There was nothing that gave her any clue, all the ground being covered in white even snow. She had run from what appeared to be mountains and the hills were covered in thick snow and now she was surrounded by spars trees, but the trees were too seldom to be part of any wood she had already seen.

With every step Marie took in the opposite direction of the cave the nagging voice in her head got louder. She had basically just left Ontari to die and she had absolutely no idea where she was. It was slowly getting dark around her the light of the day fading as the sun set and following an inner impulse she whirled around again and sped up back in the direction of the cave she had just fled from not permitting herself to second-guess her spontaneous decision.

What if Ontari had bled out already in the cave? How was she supposed to ever find her way back to Polis? With all the snow she had no idea if Anya or Lexa would be able to locate her without any tracks to follow. While another voice in her head mused if her mentors were searching for her at all yet?

Something Titus had said to her when he actually told her something about what being a flamekeeper entailed echoed in her mind. The man had said that the duty of a flamekeeper mostly consisted of protecting the commander and the nightbloods as they all were potentially a future commander.

Making a final decision Marie hurried back to the cave but she kept the sword in a tight knuckled grip once she reached it, for a moment she had actually feared she had already gotten lost when she did not find the opening immediately.

The fire inside was still blazing and Ontari was still lying in the same position she had been in when Marie had fled. Marie’s breathing quickened when she noticed how the black puddle of blood had increased in size.

Marie cautiously crouched down next to Ontari’s form and with suddenly shaking fingers Marie touched the older girl’s neck desperately searching for a pulse. She let out a shuddering breath of relieve when she did find one after a long moment.

After another deep breath Marie laid down the sword next to the fire and pushed up Ontari’s shirt exposing the still slightly bleeding wound. To Marie it seemed as if the bleeding had slowed but if it was because it actually got slower or just because the other girl might be nearly out of blood, Marie had no idea.

Marie turned her eyes on the fire for a moment contemplating on what to do. She had no idea how to really care for such a wound and she desperately tried to remember how Clarke had treated Jasper and what Nyko and Alira had done to the wounded warriors in TonDC.

Marie shortly tried to call her power forth and heal the wound that way but when nothing felt changed a few seconds later she stopped her efforts immediately remembering what had happened after she had tried too hard to heal Clarke. If she fell unconscious now as well Marie was certain they would both simply freeze to death in this cave and she doubted their bodies would ever be found.

It was obvious Ontari had planned to simply burn the wound shut but Marie had no idea if that was actually the right thing to do or not. But without any bandages to wrap around the wound or something to stitch the wound close, not that she would have known how to anyway, Marie carefully took the brightly gleaming blade from the fire with violently shaking fingers. Even the handle had heated up after the time the blade had been placed into the fire and Marie gritted her teeth against the burning in her fingers.

She took a few steadying breath looking at Ontari’s face again intently before she swallowed down the huge lump lodged into her throat and pushed the blade on what she dearly hoped was the centre of the wound.

Once the gleaming blade came into contact with the other girl’s flesh the churning smell of scorched skin filled the air making Marie’s stomach role uncomfortably bile rising in her throat at the stench.

What worried Marie slightly was that Ontari did not wake up, in fact the girl did not seem to even twitch. She remembered how one of the warriors she had watched being treated in the same way regained consciousness during the act of burning a wound shut. She imagined that this would cause immense pain to someone and that waking up was the only natural normal reaction.

She had no idea how long she needed to keep the dagger against the older girl’s skin but when the strong gleaming seemed to dim, she hesitantly took the blade away letting it fall to the ground with a clattering sound echoing strongly against the stone walls of the cave. Her breathing was elated and her eyes wide with horror as she stared down at the older girl lying motionless on the ground.

The skin was blistered strongly but as it was still smeared over and over with the black blood Marie could not really make out if she had managed to stop the bleeding or not.

Furrowing her brow Marie stood up and searched through what had been left in the cave by whoever had used it before. She found some sort of bowl and strode out of the cave. She thought that snow was just frozen water so it should turn back into water as well, so she gathered snow in the bowl. She needed to clear some of the dark blood away and she knew that keeping a wound clean was the most important or an infection would set in and those were deadly without medicine.

Marie set the bowl filled with a pile of snow close to the fire and could literally watch it melt to water. The girl held her fingers closer to the burning fire to warm them back up. Anya had been right, snow was not nice, it was just freezing cold and so wet, Marie thought with a pout.

When all the snow had melted to water Marie furrowed her brow, she had no washcloth or anything available. Huffing slightly Marie tried to rip a piece from her shirt in doing so she twisted her back and hissed in pain when she moved her left shoulder as well.

Once she had succeeded in getting a large enough piece of fabric ripped from her shirt she dumbed it into the bowl and crouched down next to Ontari again. With the wetted cloth Marie started to clean some of the blood away, she was careful with how much pressure she applied to the burned area. To her dismay the water turned too dirty to use after only a few rinses and the older girl’s back was still covered in a lot of black blood.

With a resigned sigh Marie stood up and went out to replace the now black tinted water with a fresh bout of snow. She had to repeat the procedure several times until she had finally cleaned Ontari’s back well enough to see the skin clearly.

She let out a relieved breath when she saw that she had managed to successfully close the wound. The skin looked heavily blistered but there was no new black blood.

Marie pushed the girl’s shirt up a bit more checking if there were other wounds which needed to be cleaned. Her grey eyes widened in shock when she looked down at the exposed skin finding it littered with thick scars.

But it did not seem to be kill marks either. With a sinking feeling Marie thought that the scars looked as if the older girl had been repeatedly been hit with a whip.

Marie carefully lowered Ontari’s shirt back down again feeling at her neck and fortunately finding a pulse again.

Her stomach rumbled loudly protesting at not being fed since morning. Marie frowned, she doubted she would be able to find anything edible in the snow. But she remembered that drinking was even more important than eating so she went out again bringing more snow in to melt.

Once the snow had melted she first turned Ontari on her back which proofed to be harder than she had thought, the older girl certainly was heavier than her short stature eluded. With careful fingers Marie opened the older girl’s mouth and tiled her head back, luckily her swallowing reflex still seemed to work so Marie made her drink the whole bowl before she lowered her head back down and went out to gather more snow for herself.

After she had drank her own fill Marie put a few more logs onto the fire as she thought it was already starting to burn down and she was not sure she would be able to start it again if it went out completely.

With nothing else to do Marie huddled down closely to the fire. The ground beneath her was hard and uncomfortable and her stomach still grumbled angrily. The proximity to the fire chased away the coldness from her skin leaving it feeling almost feverish. She wound the uninjured arm around her upper body as if hugging herself when all she wanted right now was to feel Anya’s or Lexa’s arms around her and soundlessly she cried. She had no idea what would happen now or how she would survive the next day and she felt so utterly alone again that she started to cry harder.

Marie was jostled awake by a groan sounding close to her. She had not even recognized that she had dozed off in the first place. When she opened her grey eyes she immediately saw that Ontari was in the process of waking up. The older girl’s face was twisted and she sort of writhed on the hard ground.

Marie held her breath in anticipation of what would happen. When the older girl had still not opened her eyes after a few moments Marie had the frightening thought that she could be suffering from a fever already.

She got up from the ground with difficulties feeling her whole body hurting all over. Slowly Marie inched closer to Ontari and carefully she placed a hand on her forehead but with a relieved breath she did not find the skin overly heated.

Not knowing what to do and finding the suspense of waiting unbearable right now Marie left the cage again with the bowl in hand to gather some new snow. To stay out a little longer she already melted some snow in her hands and directly drank it. But the biting cold of the night forced her back into the cave rather quickly.

When she entered Marie froze in her step right in the entrance. Ontari had obviously woken up now for real and the girl already was in a sitting position next to the fire.

Her black eyes seemed to burn into her own when they made eye contact and Marie cautiously showed the bowl to her “I brought some snow to drink” Marie offered into the tense silence.

Ontari’s eyes widened in disbelief at her and Marie tried not to squirm under her scrutinizing glare. She cautiously bent down and placed the bowl on the ground between them being sure to remain just out of reach.

Marie kept her eyes on Ontari while the other girl did the same before she did reach for the bowl and drank a sip. She could see her dark eyes land on the dagger she had carelessly let fall to the ground a few hours ago.

“You have stayed and took care of my wound?” the older girl asked after what felt like an eternity of silence.

Marie could read absolutely nothing in Ontari’s voice or face but she nodded immediately and watched a frown settle on the other girl’s face.

It was obvious her decision to stay and help the older girl was something she could not understand. “Why did you stay?” Ontari asked after another long silence.

Marie slightly tilted her head before she admitted “I came back”.

Ontari raised an eyebrow in question but she still made no attempt to get up from the ground so Marie relaxed slightly.

“I had run for some time” she explained intently watching Ontari’s face “But I have no idea where we are. And you were bleeding, strongly. For a moment I thought you were already dead …” Her voice trailed off and she swallowed strongly at the lump which had formed in her throat again remembering  what seemed to be a huge puddle of blood on the ground and the unmoving body of Ontari.

Ontari looked back at the young blonde girl keeping her expression unreadable. She had no idea what to make of her. It astounded her deeply that the girl had come back and tried to heal her. Begrudgingly she had to admit that the girl had saved her life, she had lost too much blood already and doubted she would have woken again without aid. Ontari could not understand why the younger blonde had truly chosen to help her, if the roles had been reversed she knew that she would have taken the blade and slide her abductor’s throat just to be sure, healing your abductor would not have even crossed her mind for a second.

The reports the queen had received regarding Wanheda and the commander’s new second had not been elaborate. She had heard that all Trikru who had met the young girl seemed to have a respect and liking for her and that she possessed certain talents with weapons but nothing more was said.

Ontari was aware of what her queen would most certainly do with the girl if she delivered her to their camp. She would be leading her to her certain death but another idea came up in Ontari’s mind. The girl was being trained as the commander’s second so why should she not become her own second once she had risen on the throne. By saving her life Marie had unknowingly created a debt between them. In a narrow sense Ontari was still following her queen’s orders, she had not succeeded in taking out the other nightbloods or the commander and they had never discussed the possibility of taking the commander’s second hostage. She had not known at first who had been so close to finding her where she had hid in the stables, but the girl’s blond hair and the red bands interwoven into them made it obvious who she was, so Ontari had struck.

Straining her neck to look out of the entrance of the cave Ontari could make out that it was still dark. She knew these lands well but she would still not chose to travel in darkness if it was not absolutely necessary. It angered her that she had lost control of the young horse and they would now need to travel by foot.

Ontari watched how the young blonde girl sank down leaning against the wall of the cave as far away from herself as possible. She slowly turned onto her side watching the younger girl over the dancing flames as silence settled heavily between them.

It did not take long for Marie to doze off again huddled uncomfortably against the cave wall. When the girl slumped against the wall Ontari got a clear view of the girl’s shirt and just now saw that it was ripped severely and a huge piece of fabric was missing from it exposing some of her pale skin to the cold air.

With a frown on her face Ontari spotted the missing fabric from Marie’s shirt bunched together and wet on the ground next to herself. When she recognized the traces of black blood on the piece of cloth Ontari carefully lifted her own shirt and found her skin cleaned of almost all blood. Her thoughts kept on circling on the question why the girl had even bothered to help her at all and now seeing that she had also carefully cleaned her whole back astounded her even more.

She could hear the other girl’s stomach rumbling loudly probably from hunger, her own stomach reminded her of its state as well, but she was so used to occasional hunger that she barely acknowledged the feeling at all.

Ontari stayed awake watching the younger girl over the flames as Marie begun whimpering lowly in her sleep. She waited for the girl to quiet down again but the sounds of distress coming from her only increased.

Marie woke up with a start breathing heavy and tears streaming down her cheeks as images from her nightmare still flashed up in front of her eyes. In her dream it had not been Ontari’s black blood she had washed away, it had been Lexa’s and the commander had gotten paler and paler until her skin had gotten as cold as the snow and Marie had been unable to help her.

When she met Ontari’s dark gaze Marie looked away immediately and wiped the tears from her face huddling closer to the wall again desperately wishing herself out of this situation and back into the tower of Polis.

“You have cleaned my wound” Ontari’s voice interrupted Marie’s musings calling her back into the harsh reality.

Marie nodded “Dirty wounds get infected and infections are deadly” she simply explained looking shortly at the older girl again.

“You should get closer to the fire” Ontari offered noticing how the girl was shivering strongly still.

Marie looked at her with wide grey eyes intently searching her face for something and Ontari kept perfectly still until Marie seemed to come to a decision and carefully inched closer to the fire and the warmth it provided.

With the light now dancing over her face Ontari noticed the tear tracks on her young face making her look even younger. Her grey eyes were focused on the flames dancing in front of her seemingly ignoring Ontari’s presence all together.

When Ontari was sure the younger girl had fallen asleep again she carefully hauled herself from the ground grinding her teeth together and reigning in a hiss of pain. As helpful as the girl had been in bringing them water, they needed something more substantial than that.

Being used to the snow it did not take Ontari long to find a rabbit. It was not a big one, but it would suffice for both of them for the night. Ontari was sceptical leaving the girl alone had been a good idea but pulling her behind her to hunt would only make it so much more difficult.

 

 

Chapter 102

When Ontari returned to the cave and could not spot the blonde girl immediately she internally cursed herself a fool until she did spot the smaller body so close to the fire she judged the girl could already be burning herself.

When Marie woke up again feeling even more tired than before her senses caught the scent of freshly roasted meat. She stretched herself immediately regretting the motion at the blinding pain shouting through her left side and she could not contain an involuntary hiss of pain.

Ontari looked at the younger girl with a frown on her features. She had already noticed the girl’s pained hisses when she had pulled her along after the horse had thrown both of them off. She thought the girl had just been sensitive and whiny but it seemed she truly had gotten injured.

The rabbit was nearly ready to be eaten and Ontari kept a close eye on it making sure not to burn the little meat it had actually contained.

Marie watched the older girl tending to whatever she had obviously hunted and she wondered that she had not even noticed her leaving and returning. But she had nowhere to run to anyway so she doubted she would have left again if she had noticed her leaving.

“Take some” Ontari offered in what she hoped was a kind tone, when the younger girl visibly hesitated she rolled her eyes “It is not poisoned”.

Marie’s eyes widened almost comically fearing she might have offended her and carefully took a leg from the rabbit. Once she took the first bite her stomach rumbled even louder and Marie bolted down the meat in a few moments.

It was still dark outside so they would not be leaving yet. Ontari could not shake one question from her mind “What has the commander planned for me?” she directly asked the younger girl.

Marie blinked a moment before she swallowed down the last piece of meat Ontari had given her “I don’t know” she answered honestly as Lexa had not sounded decisive on the matter.

Ontari raised a critical eyebrow “What was said then?” she rephrased her question. She did not know if the younger girl would be lying to her or not.

Marie shrugged her uninjured shoulder “I did not understand all of it” she settled on saying.

Ontari huffed obviously annoyed with the dissatisfying answer. Her instincts told her simply to force the younger girl to say what she wanted to know but something was holding her back from using force against the girl.

“Lexa wanted to have you trained in Polis with the other nightbloods” Marie finally said relenting under the scrutinizing gaze.

Ontari’s face showed the puzzlement she must be feeling. She had expected the Trikru commander to immediately call for her death and it went against anything she had been taught to even contemplate believing the girl’s words. But something in her grey eyes told Ontari that she had spoken the truth and she internally wondered why the girl had given up any information at all willingly.

“What happens now?” Marie asked her voice barely above a whisper fear clearly written on her young features.

Ontari looked into the flames for a silent moment, a few hours ago her answer would have been instant, right now she was wavering and she had no explanation why.

“Tell me something about the commander?” Ontari prompted Marie evading the previous question.

Marie slightly tilted her head to the side in confusion “That is a very general question. What do you want to know about Lexa?”

It did not evade Ontari’s attention how the girl immediately used the commander’s name backing up the rumours that the girl was obviously pretty close to the Trikru commander.

“Whatever comes to your mind” Ontari mindlessly said. She doubted the young girl would know what to say and which information to keep to herself.

Marie still frowned but her features scrunched up in thought for a moment before she said “She is kind and just. She is much more patient than Anya”.

Ontari nodded along. All she had ever heard was how Lexa kom Trikru had forced the clans into submission at the same age she was now. She had heard from her ruthlessness and how she favoured her own clan keeping Ice Nation as small and meagre as possible holding onto the grudge running between both clans for long years.

Sadness settled into the girl’s grey eyes thinking about Lexa and Anya just brought the loneliness she was still feeling to the forefront of her mind painfully. “Can’t you bring me back?” the girl’s question was voiced with such naïve expressive eyes that Ontari first had just wanted to laugh outright at the girl’s stupidity but instead she had just returned her focus back onto the flames.

“Sleep” she ordered her voice harsher again. It would not be long now for the night to end. Ontari stayed awake beside the fire caught in deep thoughts trying desperately to come to a decision.

Marie woke to the sound of steel clashing against steel and she whirled into a seated position ignoring the painful movement to her shoulder.

“Anya!” Marie immediately let out relieve clear on her face when she recognized the figure fighting against Ontari.

It was clear that Ontari was barely holding her strength against the general’s sword.

Anya’s brown eyes snapped to Marie for a second a flash of relieve at seeing her charge alive visible in them.

With one quick attack Anya simultaneously disarmed Ontari and knocked her out cold with the pommel of her sword against her temple.

A moment later Marie hurled herself into Anya’s arms almost nocking the woman over with the force of impact. The girl immediately started to cry once she felt Anya tighten her arms around her.

“Ssshhh” Anya soothed the girl gently stroking her blonde hair. The general had already been sure that they would not find the Ice Nation nightblood before she could reach her queen and she had no words for the endless relieve now coursing through her veins.

Marie hissed slightly when she loosened her arms around Anya’s midriff and her brown worried eyes instantly searched the girl for injuries.

“I hurt my shoulder. I think we fell from the horse” Marie explained while Anya inspected the cut the girl had on her forearm.

Three other warriors had accompanied the general in her search and one bent down tying the unconscious girl up.

“She has a wound on her side” Marie said to Anya watching how Ontari was tied up with what appeared to be honest worry for her in her grey eyes.

Anya frowned down at the girl, every fibre of her being wanted nothing more than to simply slit the girl’s throat and be done with her but she was still a nightblood and it was Lexa’s place to decide what was to happen to her. They had stumbled upon the cave by pure chance. She had pushed Ryder and the other two through a starting snow storm and had just seen reason that they did not have any actual tracks to follow when the storm had picked up, forcing them to seek cover, which just happened to be within this cave.

Anya’s eyes fell on the cut bindings on the ground “She cut you lose?” she asked doubt clear in her tone.

Marie shook her head suddenly feeling guilty “I did, when she was unconscious”.

The general’s eyebrows rose in surprise and her eyes narrowed almost angrily when she got what the girl was implying and her tone was harsh when she clarified “You could have gotten away?!” her voice rose as she finished her question.

Marie flinched slightly at the tone and the anger clearly visibly on her mentor’s face “I … I …” she stuttered feeling tears rising again in her grey eyes “I had no … no idea …. where I was and it was so … so cold. And I did … did not know what to do … and she … she was … was dying” Marie forced out through sobs.  “I am sorry” the girl ended crying in earnest now.

Anya shook her head immediately her features softer again. The logical side of her mind had to recognize that Marie running away in the dead of the night would have probably have brought her into even more danger. She would have known how to find shelter and how to find her way back to Polis, but of course Marie did not possess this abilities yet. That the girl had even attempted to save Ontari’s life once again emphasised just how differently Marie’s mind worked.

“Hush, it is alright” Anya reassured keeping her tone calm and gentle as she whipped tears from the girl’s face “You are save now”.

Marie nodded her expression still miserable and she seemed to try to figure out if Anya would accept another hug seemingly needy of the closeness right now, so Anya just pulled the girl’s smaller body into hers. She was careful not to jostle the shoulder of the girl, a healer could take a look at it once they returned to Polis.

“We will stay until the storm clears” Anya proclaimed to her companions which had all now entered the cave as well. The cave was rather small for all of them but to Marie’s great silent joy the warriors had all packed a variety of furs on their horses.

Marie seemed unwilling to let go of Anya for even a single moment so Ryder laid out furs for both of them with the corners of his lips tilting up into a smile.

“You need to let go off me for a second, Marie” Anya addressed the girl her voice carrying an amused hint.

“No” the girl shook her head only tightening her grip around the woman’s body completely ignoring her shoulders painful protest at the movement and preferring to just be close to Anya and her comforting scent.

Marie could hear Anya smirk under her breath and the general awkwardly manoeuvred both of them down to lay down on the furs. It was not the most comfortable position for Anya but the girl seemed to have settled rather happily with as much contact to Anya’s body as physically possible and Anya did not have it in her heart to force the girl to move so that her elbows would stop digging into her stomach so uncomfortably.

After a few long moments where Anya had already been sure that the girl had fallen asleep in her arms Marie suddenly looked up again. Her grey eyes landed on Ontari’s still unconscious form. The warriors had moved the girl’s body farer away from the fire to make more room for themselves and Marie thought she could see a slight shiver raking through the older girl’s body.

“Don’t we have a fur for her?” Marie asked her voice and eyes brimming with compassion.

Anya met the girl’s gaze for a moment sighing under her breath before she smiled slightly at her and signalled to one of the warriors to cover the nightblood girl as well, it would not do for her to freeze before they brought her back to Polis. The smile Marie gave her in response was worth it anyway.

Anya stroked the girl’s blonde hair a long time even after she had felt the girl’s body relax and her breathing evening out as she fell asleep peacefully. She had no incline how the girl could still be full of so much compassion for everyone around her no matter if friend or foe. She hoped that the storm would be gone in the morning as they had a few hours of ride ahead of them to reach Polis and she could imagine the turmoil and mental torture Lexa was living through right now. 

Marie woke only a few short hours later to Anya gently shaking her. She blinked her grey eyes open still heavy from sleep but she smiled up at Anya’s familiar features immediately happy that she had not just imagined her mentor coming for her.

Gratefully Marie accepted the bunch of clothes Anya had packed in her saddleback for the girl including a warmer shirt and her coat, a shawl and gloves. Once the girl had dressed herself again Anya took the dagger she still had out of her own coat and gave it back to Marie. The girl’s hair looked slightly untamed right now but Anya would not waste the time to re-do the braids at the moment.

Marie looked over to Ontari and spotted the older girl watching her in return. A dark bruise had formed over her temple where Anya had knocked her out the last night but otherwise she seemed to be fine. Marie met her dark eyed stare before Anya addressed her “How have you met her?” the general wanted know having picked up on the silent gaze exchange.

“I was at the stables with …” but Marie suddenly bit her tongue fervently searching for word without giving up Boo’s involvement.

Anya narrowed her eyes anger flashing up in them momentarily “We already know about Boo”. Now that the relief at having found the girl reasonably unharmed had settled over night the anger at her leaving the tower in the first place had resurfaced in the general’s mind.

Marie looked up at the woman with huge grey eyes biting at her lip guiltily still feeling Anya’s probing gaze on her she relented and said “I saw dark blood in the straw and went to look, if I could help…” her voice trailed off and she looked down at her feet.

Anya ground her teeth together angrily before she seethed “And you did not think for one second to notify a guard beforehand?!” her voice had slightly raised at the end.

Marie’s eyes snapped up at her for a moment before she let her head drop looking down again and shook her head, the girl’s whole poise screamed of guilt but Anya was still slightly too angry to care for the girl’s distress at the very moment. To her it seemed as if their charge had no idea just how close to her own death she had come the previous day and all because the girl had disobeyed a clear order and put herself into foolish danger.

“You certainly make keeping you safe a hard task” Anya reprimanded. “Use this damn head of yours to think the next time before rushing alone into danger, foolish girl!” the general snapped her frustration at the girl.

Marie could only nod at the stern reproof from her mentor knowing that is was warranted but she still had to try to reign in the tears that wanted to escape her eyes at the obvious disappointment in Anya’s voice.

Anya’s rant was cut short when one of the warriors came back into the cave “The storm has cleared. We can travel now”.

The general curtly nodded at him. The few things they had used over the night were packed up in the matter of a few minutes. Marie was silent the whole time shadowing Anya closely but not daring to speak up unwilling to prompt another reprimand from the woman.

Ontari was dragged out of the cave not even attempting to fight back at the moment, there was no way she would be able to flee from four warriors with the way she was in restraint. Her arms being pulled tightly on her back pulled uncomfortably at the stabbing wound on her side and she barely had any feeling left in her arms after all the time they were already bound. She had watched the exchange between the general and the blonde girl with interest. It was clear they cared for each other deeply. The girl seemed to crave the physical closeness to the general as if separating from her even for a moment would hurt her physically. The way the general had reprimanded the girl spoke of deep worry and Ontari internally mused how her own welcome would have been by the queen if she had done something like that. With a frown she imagined her own welcome and knew that it would have probably left her bruised and bleeding and not foolish enough to repeat the same mistake. She could not remember anyone holding her through the night the way the general had done it for the young girl. She imagined her mother doing it for her, but she had been so young when she had been taken from her parents to the queen that she barely remembered how they had looked like at all.

Marie happily greeted Anya’s horse once they stepped out of the cave. Her grey eyes scanned over the surroundings of the cave. It had snowed through the whole night leaving the ground covered in a thick soft layer of snow which was glinting in the morning sun. The few sparse trees she could see were also covered in a mixture of snow and ice glittering like diamonds in the sun rays.

“It looks much nicer than it feels like” Marie commented catching Anya’s brown eyes with a slight smile returning to her face before she frowned “But why does it have to be so cold and wet?”

Anya snorted at the girl’s question “So you have already lost your appreciation of snow then?” The general quickly hoisted Marie up onto the front of the saddle mounting up behind the girl with practised ease.

Marie looked indecisive “It still looks beautiful” she settled on with a pout in her voice and let herself relax slightly into Anya’s strong body behind her feeling the woman’s arms wrap around her securing her in place immediately.

The girl watched how Ontari was hoisted on a horse in front of one of the warriors she did not know the name of. She doubted the other girl would be comfortable but she knew that Anya and the others would never agree to get the bindings off and she also did not know if Ontari would try to flee, or if she even had a reason to.

“What will happen to Ontari now?” Marie questioned with worry in her voice that was not lost on Anya.

The general shook her head “That is for Lexa to decide” her tone was short signalling that she would not say more on the matter. Anya knew what she would decide if it was her decision. In her opinion it was still saver to just get rid of the Ice Nation nightblood than wait for disaster to strike later but Lexa would be the one to have the final say.

When Marie yawned a few moments later Anya smirked slightly pulling the girl more closely to her body and said in a gentle tone her brown eyes soft again “Rest, Marie, you are save now”.

 

Chapter 103

Fortunately for all of them it did not snow again on this day so that the group was able to travel without any disturbances. Halfway on their way back to Polis they met a few scouts Lexa had obviously ordered to follow them in case they would need back up. Anya quickly sent the fastest rider of them back ahead towards Polis with a message for Lexa only proclaiming that they had found Marie and the suspected abductor. The general had been careful in her wording in case Ice Nation soldiers would intercept the messenger and try to rescue their nightblood, she doubted that queen Nia would have been pleased to hear that her best shot at taking over the coalition had been captured.

Marie had woken up some time later in their journey but the girl kept quiet as if caught deeply in her thoughts leaning back heavily against Anya’s body. Anya was satisfied with continuing their travel in silence all too aware of the ears listening in to their very words and the dark eyes constantly watching Marie and her.

Once they were only about an hour ride away from Polis Marie started to ask how far away they still were, it was obvious the girl did not yet recognize any of their surroundings. Anya internally noted that she and Lexa direly needed to show Marie more of the bordering lands to Polis and she was grateful the girl had not chosen to try to run away on her own or she doubted they would have found more of her than her frozen corpse, that is if they would have found her at all.

She reassured Marie that it would not be long now until they reached Polis and started pointing out certain distinct landmarks to the girl to remember. They looked different now as they were covered in snow but the girl would still need to be able to recognize them in any weather condition even in darkness, exhausted and under stress, it may very well save her life sometime in the future.

When the tower of Polis was distinctly visible on the horizon Marie seemed to be attentive again finally recognizing for herself that they had nearly reached their destination. The girl had a scratching throat and her eyes were slightly bloodshot and Anya guessed with a flash of irritation that their charge was already well on the way to develop a sickness after the long exposure to the cold without sufficient clothing. An impending sickness would explain the girl’s overt clinginess as well.

The gates to Polis were already opened to them when they finally approached the walls of the city. Gustus and a small group of other warriors were already waiting for them. Lexa was not among the group but Anya had not expected her to be. The commander was bound to be occupied with Skykru and the ambassadors, keeping the opposing groups from killing each other. Marie obviously had expected Lexa to be there and her disappointment at not finding the woman was apparent in her dropping shoulders and the frown settling on her young face.

Gustus stepped up to Anya’s brown steed and nodded to the general in greeting holding the mount steady so they could dismount and when he noticed Marie’s reaction the burly man looked at the girl with kind eyes “Heda is busy with a meeting between the ambassadors” he informed them and Marie nodded her expression still crestfallen so he added in a lower tone “Lexa was relieved to hear of your impending arrival. You will see her soon, Marie”.

The girl smiled slightly at the man and remembered why he had been absent from the city the few past days and she asked emphatically “Is your wife better?”

A shadow passed over Gustus’ strong features when he said “She passed away with the last moon”.

“Oh” Marie said her grey eyes glittering with compassion “I am …” she started to say, but Gustus squeezed the girl’s hands before helping her from the horse and by thus silencing her words.

Marie’s left shoulder gave a painful jolt at the movement and she hissed clenching her teeth while she flinched away from the man’s strong hands.

Ontari was also pulled from the horse and given over to the harsh hands of another guard who would directly bring her into a cell in the dungeons of the tower. Marie watched on silently how the older girl was dragged of.

“Come” Anya said putting a hand on the girl’s uninjured shoulder and pulling her out of her thoughts. Marie immediately looked up at her mentor and nodded falling into step beside the general.

It did not take them long to reach the tower but when they finally did people seemed to stay away from the base of the tower.

Marie furrowed her brow until she spotted two guards carrying away a man who seemed to be dead and the place he had lain in was covered in blood streaks.

Anya had also noticed the corpse and recognized him as a member of the Ice Nation delegation “About time” she commented with a sneer on her lips.

Marie cocked her head slightly in confusion “Why do all the people walk so far from the walls of the tower now?”

“Heda has kicked him out of the throne room” Gustus explained in a nonchalant voice.

The girl’s grey eyes widened almost comically and her mouth fell open looking from the blood strain on the ground up to the top of the tower which was barely visible from the ground trying to figure out if the man had spoken the truth or if that simply was a weird kind of joke she did not understand.

“He had been testing Heda’s short patience the whole day yesterday” Gustus added and he had wanted to say more when a young warrior approached them with quick strides addressing Anya in rapid Trigedasleng in a hushed tone.

Marie who had still been preoccupied with her thoughts had not understood what the warrior had just said but Anya cursed under her breath before she turned to Gustus and promptly ordered “Bring her to her new quarters and she is to stay there” her voice was laced with urgency and without another word of explanation Anya hurried to the stairs already vanishing from view after a few seconds.

Marie watched the woman disappear now absolutely confused. Why did she have new quarters? Her confusion only mounted when Gustus did not lead her to the elevator but rather to the stairs but she mutely followed the burly guard who also seemed to be frowning and cast suspicious eyes at anyone they were passing a hand on the pommel of his sword.

“Stay inside” the man ordered her his voice sharp once they reached a door. He opened the door and once Marie had stepped inside the door promptly fell shut behind her leaving her utterly alone in the unfamiliar room. “Keep the door guarded. No one is to enter and she is not to leave” she heard Gustus’ voice ordering probably some guards through the closed door.

Marie turned around with a frown and then inspected the room. Her frown only grew more intense, the room was bare except a single bed, a small table and a stool and the small window was covered with heavy bars. The small room strongly reminded her of the room Roan had resided in and with a heavy heart Marie mused if she was a prisoner here now as well.

She had of course noticed that Anya was disappointed and even slightly angry with her for leaving the tower, but the woman had not given her the impression that it was something unforgivable. But what if Lexa had decided otherwise? She knew that between the two women Lexa was bound to have the final say in every decision as the commander. If inspected closely she knew she had sort of disregarded a direct order from the commander.

With tears rising in her grey eyes Marie slowly set on the lumpy mattress of the small bed pulling one knee up and hugging it to her chest with her good arm.

Marie had cried herself into an almost hysterical state an undefined time later when the door was opened again from the outside. Her grey eyes instantly snapped up, tears running from her eyes with her face and eyes flushed from crying, but she deflated quickly when it was neither Anya nor Lexa but a woman she did not know at the door.

The woman frowned at the girl’s state. “I am Daria” she introduced herself to the commander’s second “A healer in the tower” she added as explanation. The general had sent her there to look after the young girl telling her she had an injured shoulder and seemed to be coming down with a sickness.

What Marie did not know was that an assassin had managed to reach the top level of the tower and had murdered the guards posted there. But the assassin had obviously not been aware of the heightened security in the tower and had been overpowered by the next shift of guards.

That was what Anya had been told once they had entered the tower and she had been called up immediately to inspect the assassin and making a swap of the whole tower making sure that no other assassins had managed to slip in undetected, so the top levels of the tower up to the level which housed the conclave were closed off at the moment calling all available guards to keep the conclave and the commander save.

Lexa had also gotten the news just a few moments earlier and in reaction had kicked one member from the Azgeda delegation from the balcony. The tense silence that followed could have been cut with a sword and no one seemed to dare to even breathe too loudly in fear of following the man’s fate. She called an abrupt halt to the meeting once another guard relied the message from her general that Ontari had been brought into a cell in the dungeons. The ambassadors seemed to scurry from the room in fright relieved to be out of the presence of the impatient commander. She was internally grateful that the Skykru delegation had not been invited to this particular meeting but she was sure they would hear of what had occurred nevertheless.

Before going to the dungeons Lexa joined Anya and a group of warriors on her own floor. The corpses of the warriors who had been murdered had already been removed and the corpse of the assassin still laid in her own chambers having bled out on a rug. No markings or tattoos had been found on the woman’s corpse and the weapons seemed to come out of Polis making it impossible to figure out which clan had sent her.

“Marie?” Lexa quickly checked with Anya still slightly worried for the girl as she had not yet seen her well and alive for herself.

“In a guarded room on a save floor” Anya answered and after Lexa’s nod the corpse of the assassin were removed from her quarters. She called a handmaid to also remove the bloodied rug and dispose of it, there was no use in trying to wash the blood out.

After the healer had left Marie the girl’s mind kept on flashing with memories of the cell she had lived in in the Sky Box and suddenly the old stone walls around her morphed into the cold and sterile metal box and the whispering of the guards turned to the buzzing of the machines in her ear, trapping her further in her agitated mind.

“What do you already know about the Ice Nation nightblood?” Lexa questioned the general on the way to the dungeons. They took the stairs together, in times of lock down in the tower the elevator was regarded as an unnecessary risk prohibiting usage in such situations.

“Not much” Anya huffed “She was wounded when Marie stumbled upon her. Taking her hostage had as it seemed not been planned. Marie cared for her wound and they were waiting in a cave already deep within Ice Nation territory”.

Lexa’s eyes shown with confusion at the mention of the girl caring for the opposing nightblood girl.

Anya nodded picking up Lexa’s way of thinking without the need to hear them voiced “I thought the same, but had Marie run she would probably have frozen to death, being killed by wolfs or just went even deeper into Ice Nation land. She had no idea where they were, she said that was the main reason she returned to the cave”.

Lexa breathed out a frustrated huff of air but she nodded seeing the logic in that. It was no surprise to her that Marie would not have been able to find her way back to Polis on her own and she was sure the girl would not have survived a snow storm without shelter.

The way down from the top floor to the dungeons was long but Lexa appreciated the time it offered her to gather her thoughts back together. The last two days had been too much of a chaos for her liking. She internally cursed the Skykru fools altogether for bringing Charles Pike into her city, the man had been nothing but a disturbance in the meeting with the clans. He had done nothing but act his arrogant and preposterous self, creating even more discontent between the clans and Skykru, saying all the wrong things at the wrong times. The meeting she had just called to a halt had been her desperate try for damage containment but the clans’ calls for war against Skykru had just gotten incredibly louder. The only thing which was hindering the clans’ immediate call to march against the Skykru settlement was that the cold season had started harder and earlier than expected. Which meant for Lexa that she just had the cold season to settle the clans again and make them warm up to the idea of including Skykru, her vision for bringing them into the coalition gliding further out of reach. Markus Kane had shortly spoken with her alone apologizing desperately and repeatedly for Charles Pike but the damage had already been done and no amount of apologies would convince the clans to trust Skykru.

The constant worry if Anya would be successful in retrieving Marie alive together with the realization that the tower again had a security breach had finally made her patience snap so the descent down the stairs gave her the opportunity to calm herself again. She would need to be unbiased when meeting this nightblood. If she gave into her current mood she would simply kill the girl and be done with her.

When they finally reached the dungeons a guard showed Lexa to the cell Ontari was contained in. The nightblood had not been divested of her bindings and had simply been dumped on the straw covered ground before the bars had been closed in front of her.

Lexa strode into the cell glaring down at the girl with an unreadable expression. Ontari was slumped against a wall of the cell and her dark eyes had a glassy look to them. The commander took out a dagger and ignoring the girl’s immediate reaction to scurry out of reach from the blade, her black eyes widening in fright, relieved the girl of her bindings. Lexa judged the girl to be around fifteen summers old and the markings on her face easily identified her as Ice Nation, the rough description Roan had been able to give about the girl matched as well.

The girl stretched out her arms carefully wincing when she moved them and bringing one hand to her right side which came back with her fingers coated in black blood.

Lexa barked out to a guard to send for a healer. It would not do for the girl to die before she could make up her mind about her.

“So you are the one who was sent by the Ice queen to conquer my throne” Lexa finally addressed the girl her green eyes boring down into her.

Ontari visibly jutted her chin out her dark eyes glittering “I was raised for it” she said her voice firm although Lexa still detected a hint of fear in her dark eyes.

Lexa nodded slightly “So are my other nightbloods in Polis. And you must have been too young at the last conclave to be allowed to participate, so what makes you think you are entitled to this throne?”

The commander watched the girl’s reaction closely and it was obvious she had not expected such questions by the short flicker of confusion in her glassy eyes. Her skin had a sheen of sweat to it indicating that the girl was running a fever.

“I was raised to be commander” Ontari repeated although Lexa thought her voice sounded slightly unsure of herself.

Lexa narrowed her eyes at the girl unsatisfied with the simple repetition of the answer. She contemplated her next words taxing the girl with a piercing stare but was interrupted by the arrival of a healer.

The commander called guards to them “Bring her into a guarded room. Keep her alive and she is to remain under constant guard” she ordered and turned sweeping from the dungeon.

She climbed the stairs back up together with Anya and she could feel the other woman’s heavy gaze on her but thankfully the general kept her tongue for now. The lock down of the tower would be ended once all levels had been checked at least twice just to be sure no one could remain undetected.

The way to the room Marie was in was short and a healer had just left the room meeting them in the hall. 

Daria immediately nodded to the commander lowering her head respectfully “She needs to go easy on her shoulder for a few days but there is no lasting damage to be expected. The girl seems to develop a sickness. I have given her a tea against the slight fever but with enough rest she should be fine” the woman reported to Lexa and the general nodding again at both of them once she was dismissed.

Both of them were not prepared for the sight of Marie that met them once they entered the small room. The girl lay on the small bed curled into a tight ball and she was obviously crying hard, sobs shacking her small frame heavily.

The girl had not even noticed their entrance yet and both Anya and Lexa bandied worried looks before Lexa carefully approached Marie.

Silently Lexa sat on the edge of the small bed and put a hand on Marie’s shaking shoulder. It instantly made the girl’s grey eyes which were puffy from crying snap to the owner of the hand. Once Marie recognized Lexa the girl seemed to cry even harder before she suddenly flung herself at the commander.

“Ssshhh” Lexa soothed the girl immediately unsure why she was this upset in the first place “Calm down, you are safe”.

Marie did seem to take a long time to even start to calm down. Anya had also sat down behind the girl from the other side and put a hand on her back rubbing in a circular calming notion.

Once the girl’s sobs started to die down Lexa gently wiped her face clear of the tears looking her deeply in the eyes noticing immediately that their charge was still troubled by something. “What has got you upset, Marie?” she asked her voice gentle and eyes calm.

“I … thought …. I thought …. I was a … prisoner …. again” Marie brought out her voice still high pitched and breathing elated. The girl stressed the “again” as if she had suffered some kind of throwback to her time on the Ark.

“Prisoner?” Lexa echoed confused as to why Marie would think such a thing. Anya sighed under her breath understanding dawning on her.

“Because I disobeyed you…” the girl added with a miserable and crestfallen expression obviously trying hard not to break down again. Anya had told her several times that their judging system was harsh and strict as well, disobedience was not tolerated lightly.

Lexa immediately shook her head “No, Marie, of course not. We both are angry that you disobeyed a direct order put there for your own safety. But that does not make you a prisoner, Marie. You would not be discarded like that.”

“Ever?” the girl asked voice hiccupping and her eyes so much bigger in her drawn face.

“Never” Anya and Lexa both said simultaneously their voices serious.

“But what if …?” Marie began but was cut off by Lexa lying a finger over her lips.

The commander looked sternly at the girl “Nothing you could do would prompt that, Marie”.

“You are stuck with us now” Anya added a teasing note to her voice trying to lighten the girl’s mood.

“Like with family?” Marie asked her eyes shining hopefully as she looked between both of them. It was heart-breaking how obvious it was on the girl’s young face that although she deeply wished for a family she seemed to be convinced that such a thing was not possible for her anymore.

Anya swallowed past a slight lump in her throat before she squeezed the girl’s shoulder reassuringly “We are family to you, Marie” her voice was grave and her brown eyes swam with deep emotion.

A slight smile pulled at Marie face before she turned her grey eyed gaze to Lexa and waited for her response.

The commander nodded her expression softened as she gently caressed the girl’s cheek “We are family” she reassured and they both hugged the girl simultaneously as if symbolizing the bond between them while Marie’s smile brightened into the brightest smile both of them had ever seen on the girl’s features.

To both of them it had already been clear that they shared a very deep bond with Marie and they would not have needed to label it with the term “family” although it reflected what their hearts already knew. But it was obvious that Marie on the other hand desperately needed to hear them call her family.

 

Chapter 104

They had stayed together in the small room until Gustus reported that the lock down of the tower could finally be lifted now as no additional suspects were found. Marie had finally calmed down after what felt like a very long time to both Anya and Lexa enveloped by both of them occasionally sighing in contempt. As Gustus knocked and entered Lexa entangled herself from their arms and stood up again. She was relieved that they would be able to return to their quarters now.

Marie seemed reluctant to let go of Anya tightening her small arms around Anya’s torso so the general took the girl’s smaller body up and carried her to the elevator with Marie’s head resting comfortably in the crook of her neck.

The girl seemed awfully shy after her breakdown and blushed furiously when Gustus smiled slightly at her which prompted her to completely hide her face against Anya’s throat. Anya just rolled her eyes mutely smirking at the girl’s childish behaviour but nevertheless tightened her arms reassuringly around her frame.

Titus was already waiting right in front of the commander’s quarters his face blank. The flamekeeper was not satisfied with the commander’s idea to keep Skykru involved with the clans.

Anya stopped in front of the quarters which were assigned to Clarke now as she remembered that Marie’s wolf cub was still with the blonde leader. The general knocked at the door waiting for the Sky leader to call her inside while Lexa already proceeded them to speak with Titus, her patience was used up for the day and she had no intention of listening to his dissent for longer than necessary.

Marie looked up slightly from her hiding place against Anya’s neck confusion clouding her grey eyes as she did not immediately recognize the door.

When a voice from inside called asking them to enter Anya pushed the door open and strode inside, Marie still securely in her arms.

Clarke laid probed up against the headboard on the bed a thick old book on her lap and Risha lying next to one of her legs her fingers carding through the cub’s soft fur.

The blonde leader’s face showed a relieved smile. She had been told of the weird circumstances regarding Marie’s disappearances and she had also remembered how Lexa had told her about Costia and how the girl had been killed because of her association to the commander.

Risha perked up immediately instantly recognizing the smell of her human finally returning. The wolf cub had spent the whole absence of Marie in Clarke’s company being skittish and the cub had seemed to search for Marie in the room every few hours not understanding why her human was not returning.

Marie emitted what could pass for a happy squeal at seeing her wolf cub and Risha crawled over the bed towards Anya and Marie immediately loosened her arm around Anya and with difficulties took up the cub putting it between her own and Anya’s chest.

The girl immediately cuddled back up against Anya who simply nodded in acknowledgment to Clarke and walked them back out of the room.

Lexa’s raised voice already sounded through the hall only slightly muffled by the closed door of the commander’s quarters.

The doors were immediately opened for the general as she approached and Lexa’s voice only increased in volume without the barrier. Anya would have expected them to discuss the matter of Skykru but from what she heard it sounded more like something concerning the nightblood.

Lexa had just reported to the flamekeeper that the Ice Nation nightblood was within the tower at the moment under heavy guard. Titus’ reaction had been predictably clear, the only option her former teacher saw was executing the nightblood girl away from the prying eyes of the public keeping it a secret she had ever been here at all. He thought it was absolutely impossible to even contemplate letting her stay and train with the rest of the conclave. Anya had to agree on a certain point, the nightblood girl was already too old to still be taught their own values which were bound to contrast starkly to anything she must have been taught by the ice queen. But depending on the girl’s attitude it did not necessarily have to be an impossible task, the following days and weeks would show that.

The flamekeeper whirled around at the sound of the opening door his eyes narrowing at the girl in Anya’s arms and the general thought to have spotted a flash of what could be disappointment in his dark eyes before his face got completely blank again.

“This does not only concern Ontari, Titus” Lexa continued their conversation her voice short and eyes sharp “I will spent more time with the conclave myself and you will be delimited to solely teach them their lessons and otherwise the care of the younger nightbloods will be handled by someone else”.

Titus’ dark eyes glittered angrily and he seemed to breathe heavier. Lexa had just efficiently cut a huge part of his duty away, it had always been duty of the flamekeeper to handle the nightbloods upbringing.

Adding to Titus’ obvious anger Lexa clarified “I specifically mean Boo. We have been over your handling of the children several times” her voice was even harder now. It was obvious Lexa placed a huge part of the blame for Boo trying to flee from Polis on the flamekeeper’s shoulders.

Anya had meanwhile placed Marie on the edge of the bed and helped the girl strip from the clothes she had worn the past days while Risha already made herself at home on the soft furs placed on the bed. The girl’s grey eyes were focused on a spot on the floor and looking over, Anya noticed that it was the spot where a rug was missing having been removed after it was tainted by the assassin’s blood.

Titus seemed to seethe silently and Anya could not remember seeing the man speechless, he obviously had not expected Lexa restraining him in this way.

“That is all for now, Titus” the commander dismissed her former teacher her voice leaving no room for further discussion and her eyes hard and unyielding.

With a final glare Titus turned on the spot and stormed out of the rooms. Marie winced slightly as the door fell close loudly behind the flamekeeper.

Lexa exhaled what sounded to be a frustrated breathe before she immediately started to divest herself of the commander regalia wearing her down heavily after a long day.

Anya critically inspected the girl’s body in front of her, Marie’s upper body had been bandaged tightly to give her shoulder more stability and the girl’s skin was smeared with dirt from the hard and long travel, but it was obvious that she was tired and she could take a bath in the morning as well. Her wrists had obviously been restrained and the skin was rubbed away leaving it raw.

Marie yawned tiredly as if to prove Anya correct. The general helped the girl into a clean soft shirt and some lose trousers which were slightly too long for her legs, but she would grow into them soon enough.

With gentle fingers Anya loosened the rest of Marie’s braids taking out the red bands interwoven in them and carding her fingers through the now curled hair getting rid of a few tangles.

The general pushed their charge down on the bed covering her immediately with a soft fur “Sleep, Marie” she ordered and made to stand from the bed.

The girl’s hand instantly shot out under the fur taking Anya’s wrist in a surprisingly strong hold her grey eyes begging the woman silently to stay. Anya nodded mutely and settled down on the bed again gently prying the girl’s fingers from her wrist and keeping the girl’s hand squeezed between her own larger ones.

It did not take long for Marie to fall asleep while Lexa almost silently went through her chambers also changing into comfier clothing and in the end just paced the length of the room deeply lost in thought. Anya could see the girl fighting the sleep wanting to claim her a few times, her grey eyes almost closing until she forced them wide open again. Marie’s eyes sought out Lexa in the room every time she did that before settling onto Anya’s face again, as if to make sure she had not just imagined being back in the tower. Anya remained by her side patiently stroking the girl’s fingers gently every now and then trying to calm her further until Marie’s grey eyes finally closed and her breathing evened out.

Once she was sure the girl had drifted into a deep sleep Anya laid the girl’s hand under the furs as well gently feeling the girl’s forehead and finding the skin slightly heated. The fever was rising Anya noted with a flash of worry. The last time Marie had been sick, the sickness had been hard on her body and she doubted it would be any easier this time around.

“She is getting sick” Anya commented with a slight grimace her voice laced with worry as she stood from the bed.

Lexa was still pacing the length of the room her feet bare and barely making any sound on the rug covered floor but at Anya’s words she stopped abruptly in her pacing strengthening her back as she did so.

Her green eyes wandered over to Marie now sleeping in the bed and she noted on the flushed quality to the girl’s pale skin. “If it gets worse the healers need to be called again” she added.

“What happened with Skykru?” Anya asked feeling that the meeting must gone the worst way possible. She did not know which fool had thought it a good idea to bring Charles Pike, as the man had already been openly opposing them in their own settlement. The Skykru did not seem to possess any kind of political skills, as even young seconds to generals would know to never bring someone who would speak an opposing opinion to political talks when the alliance was on such shaky grounds.

“Fools, the whole bunch of them” Lexa snarled angrily keeping her voice low before she would wake their charge again, who obviously desperately needed the rest. “I do not yet know if Charles Pike is just an arrogant fool or well aware how to sow discontent with every word” the commander added her green eyes hard. “None of the clans which had been open to speak with Skykru about trade will even consider negotiations now” the commander took up her pacing again “They all call out for their blood again” her voice was laced with heavy frustration.

Anya nodded with a sigh. She had expected this outcome as being the one with the highest probability. Skykru had no knowledge of their culture and customs and were bound to step on someone’s pride sooner rather than later out of a mixture of their big mouths and pure ignorance. The general stripped out of the thick clothing herself putting on something else to sleep in more comfortably.

“All they have achieved is convincing the clans in their opinion that Skykru can become the next Mountain Men with all their tech” Lexa said voice sounding tired and deeply frustrated.

Anya contemplated the said words and nodded with another sigh. They both had already thought about this possibility and they had seen enough of their tech and Anya of their bombs to know that this was a very real threat and it would be hard, if not impossible, to persuade the clans to change their minds. But if the weather kept on getting worse this quickly the impending cold season would force the clans to see reason at least until the snow would melt again and make the travel for an army possible again.

“It will be a long cold season” tone thoughtful Anya commented and the commander nodded letting out another deep breath.

“Hopefully long enough to change their minds” Lexa added stepping over to the bed finally. The commander climbed into the bed next to their charge feeling the girl’s temperature as well as a frown settled on her face. She carefully listened to the girl’s breathing and thought it sounded slightly strained. “She seems to have trouble breathing” Lexa said to the general as she joined them in the large bed.

Anya nodded “She had the same the last time as well”. The general dearly hoped that Marie’s sickness would not be as bad as last time, but this time they had fully qualified healers with them so she had confidence they would be able to help their charge.

They both laid down settling for the night with the girl between them. Both of them slept easier this night knowing their charge to be safely back with them.

Lexa was awoken in the middle of the night to a strange sound and it took her a moment to identify the origin of the sound. Marie’s breathing sounded rattling and her chest was rising and falling in irregular patterns and the girl’s skin was darkly flushed and she seemed to burn up with a high fever. Anya had not woken up yet, deeply tired from the long and hard journey over the last days.

The commander gently shook Marie to rouse her from her sleep but the touch did not seem to have any impact on her. Quickly she stood up from the bed crossing her chambers with big strides and immediately ordering one of the guards posted there for the night to urgently summon a healer.

The man nodded and hurried down the halls the sounds of his heavy boots strongly resonating through the hall.

Lexa had already stepped back into her chambers when she caught movement coming from Clarke’s door down the hall. The blonde must have been woken by the sounds of the guard hurrying to the elevator.

The commander shortly caught the other woman’s eyes noting on the pure exhaustion written on the other’s face and she mutely wondered if she had slept at all yet. She had heard the guards’ reports who had been posted at the Sky leader’s door telling her that she suffered from trouble sleeping and many nights did not seem to sleep at all.

Loud coughing coming from her chambers called Lexa’s attention away from Clarke and she quickly went back inside the rooms. It seemed Anya had been awoken by Marie’s coughing fit as well now and pulled the girl’s limp body into a more upright position in the hopes of easing her coughs.

Lexa stood next to the huge bed feeling helpless not knowing what to do other than wait for the healer’s arrival. The commander had not expected Clarke to follow into her chambers and whirled around at the sound of hesitant footsteps behind her.

Clarke stood by the door with an insecure expression on her face for a moment before determination entered her face “Lay her back down, but prop her back up with cushions. Sitting her up completely won’t make it better” the blonde said as she stepped fully into the room.

Clarke was dressed in a light blue nightgown Lexa knew had been sent to the blonde’s room and her feet were bare, her blonde hair falling freely past her shoulders. Lexa motioned the blonde to come over to the bed, she was aware that she was helping the healers in the tower.

Anya had followed the younger woman’s instructions knowing that her experience in healing was much greater than her own and trusting her words.

“Since when does she show symptoms?” Clarke questioned stepping up to the bed her attention being focused on the girl.

“Her temperature had been elated the whole day” Anya said “She had been out in the snow dressed in only a thin shirt”.

Clarke nodded and ordered Anya to pull Marie completely upright for a moment. The blonde slipped on the bed behind the girl and lifted her shirt putting an ear against her back and listening to her breathing.

Lexa watched her brow crease in obvious worry as she pulled back “What is it” she asked tone as calm as possible.

“It sounds like pneumonia” Clarke said as if to herself obviously thinking hard already.

Both Anya and Lexa looked confused, never having heard this particular word.

“Is that serious?” Anya wanted to know as she eased the girl back down onto the pile of pillows her voice halting slightly. 

Clarke sighed before she said “It can be deadly. But if treated in time, she should be fine”.

Lexa and Anya bandied a silent worried glance.

“What do you need?” Lexa immediately asked addressing Clarke. Behind them Laurel just entered the commander’s quarters. The old woman stepped up to them as well clearing her throat to announce her presence and immediately nodded respectfully to the commander but turned her attention to the girl on the bed for who she had obviously been called here.

Clarke and Laurel quickly exchanged on what they could do for Marie and it was apparent after only a few words that Clarke seemed to be better prepared to help her. The grounder healer had also already dealt with this disease many times, but most of the times her patients did not survive this particular sickness, especially children and elders. Clarke wracked her brain hard trying desperately to remember all the healing lessons she had ever had. She knew that on the Ark such a sickness would have been dealt with by simply administrating antibiotics but as they were not available here, she had to remember the more natural remedies used in prior times as an alternative.

She did remember that ginger, pepper, dandelion and garlic could be used to help with infections in the air ways and hoped they would be enough to contain the pneumonia. Clarke doubted that they would be willing to bring Marie back to the Ark and she also doubted that travelling would be good for the girl’s situation, she needed immediate help.

Laurel and Clarke needed a few moments to match what the plants were called in Trigedasleng she would need, before the older woman left promising to gather all they would need and return shortly.

The girl started to whimper in her sleep caught in a feverish dream. Anya and Lexa both tried to sooth the girl but no matter what they tried the girl was inconsolable.

Clarke had occupied herself with heating water over the fire for a tea. She asked the commander if there was fresh cold water and some cloths. Lexa pulled away from the girl leaving her in Anya’s hands and showed Clarke to her bathroom where she knew they would find what Clarke had asked for.

Lexa watched Clarke wet some cloths and place them on Marie’s legs after she had stripped her of her trousers before she covered her with the furs again.

“She might need a cold bath later” Clarke said to Lexa and the commander nodded summoning a guard to call for handmaidens to prepare one following Clarke’s instructions on which herbs to add to the hot water, so that the herbs could soak before the water cooled down.

Lexa retreated to the couch letting Clarke and Laurel work. Anya stayed standing beside the bed for now watching the women force a tea down the girl’s throat and how Laurel prepared a thick strongly smelling paste to smear on the girl’s chest. Through all of the treatments Marie did not wake once what troubled both Anya and Lexa the most.

Laurel left some time later because Clarke assured her that she would be able to keep watch of the girl reasoning with the older woman that it was unnecessary for both of them to keep her vigil.

Lexa kept herself occupied with her thoughts in the other part of her chamber trying to give Clarke space from her as she still felt that the other leader was uncomfortable in her presence.

 

Chapter 105

The hours of the night seemed to pass slowly. Anya had fallen asleep some time ago after she had stepped away from the bed and joined Lexa in the other part of the room. The general’s position halfway lying halfway sitting did not look comfortable but Lexa knew the older woman would just wake again should she attempt to manoeuvre her into a more comfortable position.

Marie’s fever did not break after the tea but Clarke could not get the girl into the bathing tube alone and there was only Lexa awake as well. The commander sat on one of the comfy looking couches and wrote something in a book with a feather and ink.

“Lexa” Clarke lowly addressed the brunette, she had also noticed the tiredness in the general’s brown eyes and did not want to wake the older woman.

The commander’s green eyes immediately snapped up from the page and connected with her blue ones silently asking what she wanted.

“I need to get Marie into the tube” Clarke explained and her brow furrowed as a thought crossed her mind “Or should I ask a guard for assistance?” she did not know if this was a task the mighty commander would be doing herself or if here in Polis attendants would do everything for her. Since arriving in Polis Clarke had not seen more than a few glimpses from the commander but it was clear that the woman was at home in this rooms. Clarke had never seen her this unguarded and relaxed, dressed in a lose shirt that hung from her shoulder, her hair loose and curly and her feet bare against the rugs on the floor.

At this moment it was very hard to reconcile this young woman with the version she had gotten to know while preparing for the Mountain. Stripped of the regalia of the commander and free of the duties weighing her down during the day, the illusion of a higher age was shattered and all that seemed left was only another young woman.

Lexa shook her head at the question, closed the book softly and stood from the couch silently padding over to the bed.

It struck Clarke how silently Lexa was able to move in direct comparison to herself and her own feet made what felt to her like rather loud sounds in the otherwise quiet room, quiet save for Marie’s rattling breath sometimes interrupted by heavy coughs. Lexa did seem to possess a natural grace giving her movements the illusion of a feline predator circling its prey on soft paws.

Together with Lexa it was easy to carry Marie into the bathroom. The commander herself stripped the girl of her shirt and took of the bandage around her injured shoulder and together they gently lowered the girl into the water.

A few moments nothing seemed to happen but after another few silent moments Marie blinked her eyes open breathing still rattling and her eyes totally bloodshot. It was clear the girl was frightened by how she woke up and had difficulties to recognize where she was.

Lexa kneeled by the bathing tube making Marie look at her with gentle fingers and soothed the girl “Everything will be fine, Marie, you have a fever”. Stroking some of the blonde hair out of her face which stuck to the sweat soaked skin.

“It is cold” Marie brought out between heavy coughs her teeth started to rattle together when shivers ran through her frame.

Lexa wanted to take the girl from the cold bath immediately but Clarke shook her head “The fever has not broken yet”.

When Marie tried to push herself up to get out of the bath herself Lexa insistently held her engulfed in the cold water. The girl’s grey eyes were slightly unfocused as she weakly tried to fight of the commander’s hand mumbling “I want out … it is cold … I want … Anya … I … Lexa”.

Lexa felt a painful tug at her heart at seeing the girl like this, it was obvious she was delirious with her high fever and did not seem to even recognize her at all. How she seemed to ask for Anya and herself for help she could not offer right now felt like a blow to her heart.

Clarke had stayed back slightly giving Lexa space to care for the girl but still there in the bathroom if she needed to jump in. The conflict on Lexa’s usually so stoic face was easy to identify and Clarke again was surprised how compassionate the commander was with the young girl. Musing silently Clarke wondered if she knew Lexa at all beside the ruthless commander and what else made up the obviously complex woman. She was aware that it spoke of a high level of respect if not even trust on Lexa’s part to allow her to see the commander like this at all.

Lexa hummed the melody of the lullaby again under her breath like Clarke had already heart her do in the medical bay of the Ark trying somehow to at least partly calm the upset girl. But Clarke knew that no matter what, it would not help as long as the fever remained this high.

After some long torturous minutes to Lexa Clarke stepped closer to the bathing tube crouching down and felt Marie’s forehead for her temperature. Fortunately the skin was considerably colder to the touch, not as cold as she had hoped, but an improvement nonetheless. So Clarke nodded to Lexa grabbing into the water under the girl’s knees and lifting her body out of the water with the commander’s help.

Lexa immediately took a big towel enveloping the girl in it to dry her off quickly. Marie was barely conscious anymore and Lexa had to hold her up with her other hand to steady her.

“I will make more tea” Clarke said and left the bathroom.

After quickly finishing the task of drying the girl Lexa tried to redress her in clean and dry clothes. But getting the girl’s arms into a shirt with only one hand and Marie totally unresponsive proofed harder than Lexa had anticipated and it took her some rather long minutes and a lot of strange manoeuvres to succeed in her task. Once she did Lexa simply pulled the girl’s almost limp body up into her own arms and carried her back into the main room immediately putting her down on the bed.

But at first Marie kept her arms securely locked around Lexa’s body and Lexa had to carefully pry their charge’s fingers away where they had bunched into her shirt, the pitiful whimper the girl emitted at  the action tore at her heart painfully again before she could cover her with a clean soft fur.

Clarke came over back to the bed with a steaming cup in hand but Marie was still so deep between delirious and sleep that they both together made the girl drink the tea. It struck Clarke how Lexa seemed overly careful not to touch her in any way and for some reason that irked her.

Lexa’s attention seemed solely focused on Marie but Clarke unexpectedly moved her hand another way than would probably have been expected making Lexa’s hand land on her upper arm as she moved.

The commander immediately removed her hand as if struck and shortly glanced at the blonde leader “I apologize…” she said her green eyes guarded.

Clarke sighed under her breath pursing her lips at the reaction. She could not remember Lexa being like this all those weeks ago and she thought to have spotted a slight blush on her face before the commander stepped away from the bed, Marie once again settled to sleep for some time.

Risha who had been ignored in the last hours had watched the other humans bustled around her human with curious eyes. The wolf cub was not impressed when Clarke hindered her from climbing onto her human’s chest. But Clarke took the cub and put it on the floor not wanting the animal to disturb the girl’s rest in any way. It seemed as if the cub narrowed its eyes at her turned on the spot like it was offended and padded over to the commander.

Lexa had sat down on the couch again and continued to write in her own journal. Risha nudged the commander’s leg with a soft paw and was put on the couch beside the commander immediately with one hand carding through her fur soothingly.

Clarke watched the commander silently from her post beside Marie’s resting form. She wondered how much sleep the other woman could have gotten this night, although nothing in her posture spoke of any exhaustion at all and her eyes were as sharp as ever.

She knew that the group from her people had arrived in Polis and she had fully expected someone asking to see her the minute they arrived.

Marie started to cough violently and Clarke eased her into a more upright position taking the strain from her chest.

Anya woke from the sound groaning tiredly as she did so. A headache was blazing behind her temples fiercely, a deep ache in her back and neck from having slept in a weird position.

Lexa caught her former mentor’s eyes “You can go and sleep in your own quarters” she offered in a calm tone and that Anya did stand up and leave the room without any discussion spoke volumes of the exhaustion the general was feeling.

Clarke watched the general leave the room silently, Marie had settled down again after her coughing fit, so Clarke’s blue eyes returned to the commander, who had bent over her journal again writing something down.

“Do you write in English or Trigedasleng?” Clarke asked as she went over to Lexa surprising herself slightly with speaking up. She had just blurted out the first question of many clouding her mind.

Lexa also seemed surprised as her green eyes snapped up away from the page before she blinked a few times and her face got completely closed off again, her voice was even when she answered “In both basically”.

Clarke tilted her head slightly peering at the still opened page, but what met her eyes was not the alphabet she was used to.

“It is the way we write Trigedasleng used to write in your language” Lexa clarified as she closed the book sensing that Clarke seemed intent to talk.

“That does not sound like a combination many would be able to decipher” Clarke mused in thought.

Lexa inclined her head “It is not meant to be”. The commander’s before her since the development of Trigedasleng had all written their journals in this way. It assured that only warriors skilled in writing and reading and in both languages were able to read the texts, a combination truly found only in very high ranking ones and then it still needed a certain degree of training.

“Do you ever not work?” Clarke asked after a moment of silence seeing Lexa’s hand twitch as if to continue her writing.

Lexa’s green eyes were hard now “I am always the commander” she simply said unyielding.

Clarke sighed “But do you ever rest?”

“The work of a commander never ends” Lexa commented “I could stop resting all together and still I would never be out of “work” as you put it”.

Clarke’s lips twitched amusement pulling at her lips “Sounds exhausting” there was a hint of a tease to her tone.

Lexa did not seem to know how to react to this other than mutely inclining her head, or she simply had nothing to say to this, Clarke was not sure.

“Do I have you to thanks for being left alone by my people?” the blonde asked her eyes boring into Lexa’s after a long moment of silence between them.

Lexa’s hand carding through Risha’s fur paused for the blink of a second before she resumed the movement, her expression looked almost puzzled as she said “You wished to be left alone”.

Clarke met her gaze intensely “So you banned them from seeing me?” she checked.

“I merely restricted them to their allotted level in the tower” Lexa said sounding slightly confused. The commander internally wondered if she had misinterpreted Clarke’s wishes.

“Thank you” Clarke said after another moment of silence and Lexa merely inclined her head in acknowledgment.

Clarke internally mused how a re-union between her people and her would have looked like. She had heard the guards talking about the meeting between her people and the ambassadors of the clans and it had sounded as if it had turned out the worst way possible for her people. She was almost one hundred percent sure that her people would have demanded her to come up with a solution for the chaos they had already caused if she had met them.

It was such a contrast, the way her own people treated her and the way Lexa treated her. It was blaringly apparent that Lexa did not expect anything from her and she was still unsure what the commander could have gained by allowing her to travel to the capitol with her or if she just allowed her for her own sake, somehow it still was hard to contemplate this possibility. Her people or at least what was left of the 100 were always looking at her to know the solutions for everything, save them all and later be blamed for what she had allowed to happen in order to save them. While the adults from the Ark all thought her unfit to make such decisions simply because they still regarded as a child.

“How do you do it?” Clarke chocked out suddenly feeling a huge lump lodged deep in her throat making it almost impossible to breathe nevertheless talk.

“Do what?” Lexa asked her voice calm but her green eyes seemed so much more compassionate with the intense way she stared silently at her.

“Deal with all of it?” Clarke asked feeling so awfully small right now under the weight she felt trust on her shoulders and the guilt crushing her down.

Lexa seemed to contemplate her words for long moments before she carefully said sitting slightly straighter “I was raised to lead my people, Clarke. I was taught not to question what it needs to protect them at a young age. I have long learned to separate the decision I make in a war from my feelings.”

Clarke sighed, she had essentially known that already, but it did not help her at all. An image of a young brunette girl with wild hair barely contained in braids and emerald green eyes struck up in her mind, how the innocent girl was taught things no child should ever have to think about.

“We had that already” Clarke almost snorted “You do feel for your people, you felt for those who died in TonDC”.

Lexa inclined her head her voice honest “I do feel for all of them, yes. But I know that I cannot let feelings get in the way of duty. Not now, not ever.”

Clarke sighed again. She recognized that Lexa had just confirmed that if a situation like the Mountain would repeat itself, as the commander she would make the same decision again. But Clarke had also already seen just how big just Polis was and for just how many people Lexa was responsible. She was already breaking under the responsibility for her own people which could not even dream to compare in number to the population of the clans. She had no idea how Lexa had not broken yet and still seemed so unbelievably strong.

“I do not know how to move one” Clarke finally said after another long silence. Lexa had simply waited for the blonde to state her mind. The commander was still not convinced that offering the blonde any advice would really cause something.

“You already do” Lexa retorted voice carefully even without even the hint of any judgement “You survived and you live and you will continue to do so”.

Clarke snorted again shaking her head “I barely live anymore, I survive. I … I can’t close my eyes without seeing them … without hearing their screams…” even to her own ears her voice sounded weak and the bitterness in her words left a foul taste in her mouth.

Lexa could see a shiver running through the blonde’s body and she nodded again “The memories will fade with time” she assured calmly “And there are teas you can take to allow for a dreamless rest”.

Clarke furrowed her brow “Do you take such teas?” for some reason she did not think that likely.

Lexa seemed to consider for a moment what to say before she answered her face shadowed for the flash of a second “I cannot afford to numb my mind and make myself vulnerable. But within the protected walls of Polis I have taken such concoctions often enough.” Lexa had a faraway look on her face before she blinked her eyes regaining their focus as she added “I took some every night after Costia’s head was delivered to my bed and I had sent Anya away from Polis”. Dark memories minutely flashed up in Lexa’s mind and she doubted she would have remained sane without the help of the tea, unable to close her eyes, afraid to fall asleep and so utterly alone.

Clarke seemed speechless for a moment her blue eyes full of sympathy for the young woman opposite of her. “How bad have my people fucked up?” she asked changing the topic sensing the shift in the other leader’s mood.

Lexa raised a brow at the blonde critically forcefully banishing the old memories from her mind before a slight smirk appeared on her face “As bad as possible” she retorted her expression turning serious and suddenly exhausted.

Clarke blinked at the change in the commander’s expression and looked at her questioningly.

Lexa thought for a moment on how much to tell to Clarke before she decided to tell her the whole truth. “I had hoped to soon be able to include Skykru as the thirteenth clan into my coalition” she proclaimed to the blonde leader watching her reaction intently.

“Why would you do that?” Clarke asked sounding bewildered.

The commander sighed and Clarke could shortly see regret in her green eyes “If your people became my people, I would never have to choose again” she said softly expression open and vulnerable.

Clarke sucked in a harsh breath being caught completely off guard.

“I can never guarantee lasting peace between Skykru and the other clans if they do not join into the coalition” Lexa clarified expressively.

“You “had” hoped” Clarke said after a short pause catching up on the past tense.

Lexa sighed frustration clouding her expression “One meeting with the Skykru delegation was enough to destroy any and all hopes I had for an approximation between the clans and Skykru. All the clans who had been open to negotiate about trade have withdrawn their offers and joined Ice Nation, Rock Line and the Desert Clan in their calls for war”.

Clarke looked utterly shocked, it was obvious she had not expected the situation to be this serious. “War?” she echoed her voice sounding slightly hollow.

The commander nodded “Charles Pike was quite successful in convincing all ambassadors that your tech gives your clan the possibility to rise as the next sort of Mountain Men”.

Anger flashed up in Clarke’s blue eyes “Which idiot of the council did think to bring him here?!” her voice was raised slightly.

Lexa smirked but shook her head “The damage is done now, Clarke. I have the cold season to try to repair it and convince the clans otherwise”.

Clarke’s brows furrowed in confusion so Lexa added “The cold season has started earlier and harsher than usual, promising an exceptionally hard winter. Troop movements in this season are foolish and wars usually never take place during this season”.

Clarke nodded and opened her mouth to say something more but was interrupted by Marie erupting into another strong coughing fit.

The blonde and Lexa both stood up from their seats and went over to the bed, Risha watching behind them but rolling herself into a ball on the couch to sleep.

Once the girl’s coughing fit had finally ended Clarke had felt the girl’s forehead again feeling the fever returned full force “We need to repeat the bath” she explained already pulling the fur from the girl’s heated body. It was as drenched with sweat as the girl’s clothing was, sticking to her skin uncomfortably.

They repeated the same procedure again as before and sometime later Marie was back in the bed under another bunch of fresh furs. The girl’s grey eyes were opened but unseeing and she cried slightly. Lexa had sat down next to her on the bed holding the girl to her chest, gently caressing her blonde hair and humming the lullaby to her again.

Marie was cranky and did not understand why she felt this badly, her mind muddled by the fever waging in her body. She fought weakly against Clarke and Lexa when she was forced to drink another cup of tea. It worried Lexa to no end that the girl’s strength was obviously waning down quickly.

The tea seemed to make the girl sleepy and soon she drifted off again into a troubled sleep still encased in Lexa’s strong arms. Lexa felt her own eyes getting heavy as well after some time. When she tried to entangle herself from Marie the girl started to stir again, whimpering pitifully so that Lexa settled down for a moment giving the girl the opportunity to fall into a deeper sleep.

The commander did not realize dozing off, but sometime later she was startled awake by Clarke pulling a fur over her body. The blonde’s face was cast into shadows by the flickering candle night and her voice was soft as she said “Goodnight, commander”.

Lexa had been intent on getting up from the bed but somehow she fell asleep against her will before she could do so.

 

 

Chapter 106

Marie’s skin was again hot with a strong fever when Lexa was awoken again by the door to her room opening. It was Anya together with Alira and other handmaidens who had come to change the water in the bath and take care of all the clothing and furs the girl had already needed through the long night.

Lexa spotted Clarke sitting on a chair next to the bed and her brows creased as she had not heard the girl move the chair there. The blonde leader barely looked awake anymore and Lexa doubted she had even slept one second the previous night.

Gently Lexa now did entangle herself from their charge ignoring her protesting whimpers although it pained her deeply to do so. She needed to continue the meeting with the ambassadors she had called to an end so abruptly the day prior and other things needed her attention.

So Lexa quickly got ready for the day ahead of her, judging from the slight headache she felt building behind her eyes she doubted this day would prove any easier.

She was surprised to see Clarke approach her from the corner of her eyes while Alira re-did her intricate braids with quick practiced fingers.

“Is there anything I can do?” Clarke asked.

The tone off Clarke’s voice signified to Lexa what the blonde was asking for. She was surprised Clarke was asking at all as she would have truly respected her wishes not to be involved in anything political. “If you do not wish to take over your people’s lead…” Lexa retorted with a slight tease at seeing the blonde’s features twisting in obvious distaste before the commander finished more serious “… there is not much you could do”.

“”Not much” implies that there is something” Clarke probed insistently.

Lexa sighed “Nothing I would ask of you” she simply replied.

Clarke’s brows furrowed and her tone was sharper again “Lexa, what can I do?!”

The handmaidens looked rather alarmed at someone rising their voice against the commander in her own private chambers but Lexa did not bait an eye to her outburst.

“Bow to me” the commander retorted her eyes as sharp and voice deadly serious.

The blonde seemed taken aback and blinked at the other woman “Bow to you?” she echoed.

Lexa nodded “You are the only member of your clan that the ambassadors still hold respect for”.

Clarke’s eyes flashed angrily at the thought of having to submit in public to Lexa like that but before she could voice her opinion Lexa said “I knew you would react this way and this is why I would not ask it of you”.

Alira had finished the commander’s hair a moment ago and stepped back from Lexa giving her the opportunity to stand up. Quickly Lexa donning on her full commander regalia, she did not look at Clarke anymore at all, simply choosing to ignore the blonde for now. If not for her insistent probing, she would not have even told her at all and she was slightly angry with herself for having said anything.

Lexa quickly conversed with Anya. The woman had nothing too pressing for the day, which could not be rescheduled giving the general the opportunity to stay with Marie in addition to Laurel.

After that Lexa simply swept from her quarters leaving Clarke standing fuming silently.

Laurel had taken Marie into the bathroom again with another handmaiden and Anya, noticing Clarke’s brewing reaction had stayed in the main room approaching the blonde.

“You know that Lexa would not have even told you, had you not probed?” she asked critically.

Blue angry eyes snapped to Anya instantly blazing up at her. “She told me, she wants to make Skykru part of the coalition, to not have to choose again” Clarke seethed “And now she wants me to bow to her, submit to her?!”

Anya breathed out frustrated. Sometimes she wished to simply take the infuriating blonde and shake some sense into her, literally. “You do not listen!” she retorted voice hard as steel and louder as well “Lexa does NOT ask you to submit, because she respects you too much”.

When Clarke opened her mouth to retort something Anya silenced her cutting off what she was sure to be an angry rant “No matter if you believe it or not, Sky girl, Heda will not ask you and instead try to sway the clans the next weeks”.

When the younger woman still looked angry Anya huffed under breath rolling her eyes “I don’t know why I even try to talk sense into this thick skull of yours. I have never met someone so stupidly stubborn like you, Sky girl”.

Clarke ground her teeth together angrily, but even though she still felt upset, she knew that Lexa had specifically said, that she would not ask her to submit publicly. If the situation between the clans and Skykru remained this tense she would need to think about it again, hopefully calmer then.

Clarke dismissed herself from the commander’s quarters in order to go to her own. There she found a small pouch with herbs and neatly written instructions on how to use them. Clarke scrunched up her brow and returned to the commander’s quarters pouch still in her hand.

Laurel had just tucked Marie back into the huge bed when Clarke entered. The older woman spotted the pouch in her hand immediately and simply said “Heda told me to provide you with them”. Clarke blinked a few times mutely, nodded and left again.

The blonde had no idea when Lexa could have taken the time to give that order but if could have only been after their slight confrontation. For some reason the thoughtful gesture toucher her deeply solidifying again that Lexa was not expecting anything from her, but rather satisfied with offering her support without anything in exchange. Clarke suddenly felt ashamed for her outburst. Tiredly she did brew herself a tea following the instructions carefully. The concoction tasted horrible but she drifted off into a dreamless sleep only a few moments later.

Anya stayed beside Marie’s bedside sitting down on the chair Clarke had used through the night. The general felt slightly more rested, still tired, but she did not wish to leave Marie alone either.

The girl switched between her body caught up in a very high fever and suddenly shaking as if she was freezing. All in all her health seemed to have diminished even more. Marie was coughing often and she had started to cough up a slight amount of blood every time she did. Her breathing still sounded rattling and her chest was moving strangely as if she could not move her whole chest at once. Her heart rate was increased as well as her breathing.

Every time Marie coughed up some blood Anya bent over her wiping the blood from her lips.

“How long until she will get better?” Anya asked, seeing the girl like this pained herself deeply and she wished to be able to switch places with her and shoulder this sickness in her stead.

Laurel looked indecisive “That is hard to tell, general” she said brow creased in thought “Clarke said that five to seven days are normal, after that her state gets critical”.

Anya sighed knowing full well how excruciatingly slow time could pass in situations like this and she resigned herself to a few long days ahead of them.

Anya’s prediction became sadly true and it became increasingly harder for Lexa and her to take time to sit with Marie themselves, their respectful duties calling them away often enough. Clarke had offered to take over in this times, as she had nothing better to do and the purpose gave her something to focus on, something she was internally grateful for.

Three complete days had passed like this and both general and commander were not easy to deal with, their patience getting shorter with each hour passing without any improvement from Marie.

Lexa was busy the whole day with meetings and also had to finally take some time herself to spend with the nightblood children, so the commander was away from her chambers for the biggest part of the day. The general was also occupied with personally training Ontari for the day. The Ice Nation nightblood had recovered quickly from her infected wound and both Anya and Lexa had agreed that the commander needed to make a final decision as soon as possible but for that they wanted to see more of Ontari. Lexa thought it too risky to immediately bring the older girl together with the rest of her conclave and she did not trust Titus not to simply murder Ontari so she had asked Anya to spend a few hours with her, judging her skills and character.

That had left Clarke as a volunteer to stay with Marie, the girl’s fever still had not broken even after four days and although she had not voiced it aloud, Clarke was worried the girl would not recover.

When Clarke had heard that Raven was among the group of Skykru who had come to the capitol and that the young woman had asked after her, she had asked a guard if she could see the engineer. Clarke had been surprised when the guard nodded and left without another word from the door to the commander’s quarters. She had not expected Lexa to leave instructions that Clarke could welcome guests in her quarter.

Clarke had already returned to Marie’s bedside confused by the exchange when the door was opened again some time later and Raven stepped inside. Clarke smiled openly at the brunette, who was occupied with looking around the grand rooms.

“No wonder you had wanted to come here, Griffin” she commented acknowledging the luxurious furniture.

“This is are the commander’s quarters” Clarke explained watching Raven’s features morph into distaste.

Raven shortly looked to Marie “I heard the poor kid could not take a break” the engineer still vividly remembered the girl lying in the medical bay on the brink of death.

“Pneumonia” Clarke simply commented with a sigh. She truly hoped Marie would improve soon. She knew that the sickness could continue like this up until a week and a half until they really had to worry.

“I heard she ran away” Raven added with a knowing look.

Clarke furrowed her brow, she had been told what had really happened “From who?”

“Pike” Raven shrugged her shoulders “Don’t know how trustworthy his words on that are though”.

Clarke snorted “Not at all obviously. She was abducted from Polis.”

Raven’s slight smirk fell from her lips “Oh”. “And you are her babysitter now?” she asked with a raised brow a moment later.

Clarke shook her head “Anya and Lexa are occupied”.

Raven arched an eyebrow at the blonde her dark eyes flashing “Lexa it is now? Good to know you are so buddy-buddy with the commander to all grounders now, who has basically left us to die, Griffin”. The critics in her voice were clear.

“Raven, why is Pike here?” Clarkes asked instead, ignoring the jibe.

Raven crossed her arms over her chest “The council obviously thought it a brilliant idea to show him “peaceful grounders”. It was bound to backfire.”

Clarke creased her brow shaking her head with a sigh.

“You have no idea how quickly he had managed to sway people in his opinion” Raven said “I would not be surprised if he even managed to get chancellor if they continue like this. And Bell-boy is his first supporter”.

Clarke blinked at the other girl in disbelief “Bellamy? Why?”

“Octavia came to Arkadia a day before we left for Polis. She and Lincoln will “bond” and she made it clear she was not one of us anymore and would never return to Arkadia” Raven explained “Bell-boy thinks she has been brainwashed by them”.

“Shouldn’t he be happy for her?” Clarke asked voice still disbelieving.

Raven nodded with an unamused expression “I don’t think he does normal reactions. Pike just recognized his anger towards Indra and Lincoln”.

Clarke sighed deeply “Pike chancellor? You can’t be serious?”

Raven shrugged her shoulders “Your mother said she thought about giving up the pin. She sucks at doing two jobs at once”.

“Kane should become chancellor” Clarke remarked.

Raven nodded “If we ever want peace, sure. But tell that to the others.”

They were interrupted by the doors opening again and Anya stepping inside. The general’s brown eyes narrowed at the brunette Sky girl but she nodded in greeting to her, remembering her as the one who had helped taking care of Marie at Arkadia.

Clarke noted that Anya had fresh bruises on her knuckles and she silently wondered what had happened. Anya excused herself into the bathroom to clean up and Clarke spotted more strains of what could be blood on her armour, she hoped it was not her own, or she would need medical attendance as well.

Raven had her brow creased “Wow, she never seemed to be in a good mood to begin with, but now I would not want to cross her path”.

Clarke laughed lightly for a moment before Marie coughed up some blood again, which she immediately removed from her lips with a wet cloth. “She is worried” Clarke said simply “Both of them are”.

“Yeah, I heard the commander has kicked someone from the balcony of her throne room” Raven added wanting to know if that rumour was true.

“I don’t know if that is true” Clarke said shrugging her shoulders. She had heard the guards whispering about something like that as well, but she had not believed that.

Anya had returned into the room without them realizing and Raven jumped slightly when the general commented in a nonchalant tone “It is” she bent down slightly over Marie’s sleeping form pushing a strand of blonde hair from her face “And it was not the first time” she added and as she straightened again “Nor will it be the last”.

Clarke nearly did a double take when Raven cocked her head at Anya and said “Then I suggest Pike. Or he will fuck up even more”.

To both of their surprise Anya actually laughed out loud at that before the general sobered up again “I will be sure to tip Lexa off to that suggestion”.

Raven bandied looks with Clarke unsure if that was a joke or serious and with the way the grounders all seemed able to completely close off their expressions it was impossible to tell.

When Marie suddenly was caught in another strong coughing fit, so strong it actually woke her from her fevered dreams, Anya immediately slipped onto the bed beside the girl easing the girl into a sitting position and rubbing her back soothingly.

Marie’s grey eyes were unfocused and her voice scratchy “It hurts” was all she said expression broadcasting the pain she felt at every breath.

“It will get better” Anya tried to reassure her charge softly caressing her cheek and wiping a few tears from them.

Clarke had stood up to retrieve a new dose of tea for the sick child. It was easier to make her drink it when she was at least slightly conscious reducing the probability of her chocking and some additional liquid getting into her already aggravated lungs.

Raven remained a few steps away from the bed and watched Clarke how she prepared the tea, offering the general privacy in caring for Marie. It still astounded Raven to see a grounder handle a child this gently, although she knew they actually did not have a reason to think this way; they had gotten to know the war culture of the clans and not their everyday life after all.

Anya desperately tried to sooth the upset child. They had seen over the last four days that crying usually only worsened her state but it seemed to be all Marie did once she woke. Clarke had tried to explain to her what pneumonia actually was and that it was usually accompanied by a huge amount of pain.

The general took the cup with tea from Clarke’s hand, now that Marie was at least somewhat awake she was able to help in drinking and did not take two people to force the liquid down her throat. But it was still not an easy task to convince her to drink at all, it seemed swallowing itself hurt also and it pained Anya that she had to remain steadfast and urge Marie to continue to drink until the cup was empty again.

It was also impossible to get Marie to eat anything else than a bowl of clear broth. The healers had tried to give her something more substantial but as soon as she needed to so much as chew there was nothing that could convince Marie to eat at the moment. Anya was afraid that the girl might already be wasting away in front of their eyes.

Ontari had mostly been recovered from her wound, or at least the infection seemed to have been fought off, the wound itself was deep and was bound to restrict her movements for some time to come. Anya had to force herself from not unleashing her anger at the nightblood girl on her when she had seen her. She had expected Ontari to be defiant, arrogant and unwilling to listen, but she had been slightly surprised to find her almost silent. Anya did not know if shouting at the girl that it was her fault that Marie was almost dying right the moment the door had opened had efficiently shut her up or if they had misjudged her attitude this badly.

After Marie fell asleep again Clarke asked the general if she felt comfortable to look after Marie on her own for some time, Anya of course shooed the blonde girl away watching the other one follow her, they probably wanted to catch up to each other.

Anya stood from the bed again discarding her armour leaving her in her comfier clothes she had worn beneath the armour and sat on the bed beside Marie gathering the sleeping girl into her arms.

Anya had not noticed falling asleep but when she did Marie was looking up at her and her grey eyes seemed to have finally cleared. The girl smiled up at the woman slightly until she had to cough again. Marie brought her fingers to her mouth and inspected her fingers with a furrowed brow when they came back from her mouth bloodied.

The girl seemed to shiver in shock at the sight and Anya quickly pulled her chin up to look into her eyes “It is alright, Marie, you are sick. But you will get better again”.

Marie’s breathing was elated and tears sprung up in her eyes when the pain in her chest mounted “It hurts sooo much” she whinnied.

Anya gently cleaned her fingers off the blood “SSshh. Try to breathe calmly. Breathe like I do” she suggested and pulled the girl against her chest more firmly “In and Out” Anya tried to synchronize their breathing and it seemed to help at least somewhat.

“Why does it hurt so much?” Marie asked once her breathing had calmed slightly. The girl had no idea what had actually happened to her.

“Your lungs are inflamed” Anya explained her tone gentle and eyes soft as she stroked over her back “But you will get better soon” she promised to the exhausted child.

Marie nodded cuddled against her chest “Love you” the girl mumbled before tightening her hands bunched in Anya’s shirt and promptly fell asleep again, her body utterly exhausted from fighting the strong infection.

Anya lay utterly stunned beneath the girl, blinking down at her face stupidly unable to form any coherent thought. It took her a few moments to gather herself and she still felt shocked when she climbed from the bed careful not to wake their charge to call for the healers, who had wanted to be notified should anything change.

 

Chapter 107

Laurel and Clarke had both answered Anya’s summons for the healers. The lead healer was satisfied with finding the girl’s fever broken for the first time, but Clarke cautioned them with a frown that this did not have to mean anything, she said relapses were to be expected and if not Marie was expected to suffer from the symptoms for weeks to come.

The general had sent a guard to the throne room to relay to the commander that Marie’s health finally seemed to improve. Lexa’s temper had been shorter and more volatile than ever the last days and the ambassadors seemed to breathe out a relieved breath when the commander called an early halt to their meeting, wanting to see for herself to their charge.

While Anya had spent at least part of the last nights in her own quarters to at least get a few hours of sleep, Lexa had outright refused to do the same. The commander had insisted of staying within her own quarters but had also refused to have Marie moved from her bed. So Lexa had barely gotten more than a few minutes of sleep at a time in the last nights and the utter exhaustion the woman felt showed clearly in her temper. Titus had not dared to contradict her on anything the last days, sensing that doing so might prove to be his undoing.

Lexa and Clarke had not spoken more than a few words after their confrontation again, both women too stubborn to approach the other. Anya and the commander were grateful that the blonde leader had been willing to help look after Clarke, but all their contact was solely constricted to taking care of the sick child.

When Lexa stepped into her chambers Anya looked at her with a slightly raised brow “She sleeps still. You did not have to come immediately” there was a slight tease in her tone.

The commander shook her head emitting a frustrated growl. A messenger had reached Polis in the hours before sun up being sent by the ice queen. It was a wonder the messenger had been able to reach the capitol at all, obviously the snow storm Anya had encountered was neither the last nor the strongest one. The messenger had been frostbitten, lips blue from the cold and had just managed to force the message out of his lips before he succumbed to his exhaustion. Queen Nia proclaimed that she was unable to travel to Polis, claiming that her own capitol was already burrowed under a deep layer of ice and snow. She had not just sent her refusal to arrive before the ambassadors before the cold season eased up again, Nia had also demanded help for her villages nearer to Trikru borders.

With the Ice Nation still part of the coalition and without Nia’s presence in the capitol Lexa was nothing short of forced to actually grant Azgeda the help of the coalition. The problem was that Lexa knew that she could not blame all of Azgeda for the sins of their queen and so she had begrudgingly organised a caravan to travel into their lands.

Lexa divested herself of the regalia of the commander not intending to leave her chambers again today. She sighed putting her hands on the armrest of a chair straightening her back with resonating cracking sounds as she stood straight again.

Lexa stepped up to the bed immediately noticing that the flush had finally left the girl’s skin. Gently the commander placed a hand on the girl’s cheek breathing deeply in relieve when she found it cool to the touch. Marie stirred slightly under the gentle touch leaning into Lexa’s hand subconsciously.

Anya stood beside the bed as well a smile pulling at the corners of her lips at the sight. The general was not blind to the dark circles forming under the commander’s eyes, Lexa needed to rest or she would get sick as well.

Lexa kept on softly stroking the girl’s face for a few moments until Marie seemed to settle again and the commander stepped back from the bed. Both relief and exhaustion were clearly visible on her face.

“What can you report from the Ice Nation nightblood?” Lexa asked her general in a low tone walking over to the couches in the other part of the room.

“She was suspiciously compliant” Anya commented sitting down opposite of Lexa “Have you spoken to Clarke yet?”

Lexa narrowed her eyes at the general dangerously.

Anya rolled her eyes mutely before she explained “About Pike”.

Lexa’s expression mirrored confusion which morphed into anger a second later “What has that fool done now?”

“Apparently the sky people are blinder than anticipated” Anya explained further “I heard Clarke and her friend, Raven I think she is called, discuss him. It seems he could become leader of Skykru”.

Lexa’s hands clenched into fists lying on her knees angrily her teeth gnawing together and her eyes flashing in turmoil. “Are they trying to force my hand?!” Lexa seethed after a moment where Anya had almost worried the commander would break a tooth were she to ground them together even slightly stronger.

Anya met Lexa’s fierce gaze unabashed “It would mean outright war” she agreed easily. If Pike become their leader it was expected that Skykru would attack them for land or other resources soon after.

Lexa suddenly stood rising up in a second angrily pacing the length of the room her hands still clenched into tight fists.

Anya watched her former second pace for a few moments waiting if her anger would fade on its own, when it was clear that only step seemed to only make her anger rise further Anya stood up as well. Lexa did not pay her general any mind and did not even seem to notice her leave the room. Anya called one of the guards into the commander’s quarters with the clear order to remain by their charges side until they returned.

When she entered again Anya took two swords from a cabinet and directly stepped in front of Lexa’s path offering her one of the swords. Her green eyes gleamed an angry fire burning inside them as her hand closed around the handle accepting the weapon without further thought.

As it would have taken them too long of a way to reach the basement of the tower Anya followed Lexa up on top of the mountain. An icy wind welcomed them but Lexa did not even show the slightest indication she felt the dramatic temperature drop at all.

The huge fire which was kept burning was of course ablaze right now as well, it would only be extinguished once Lexa died and would be lightened again after a new commander took up her place.

General and commander circled each for a moment Anya simply waiting for the younger woman to attack. She knew she would need to be careful with the slight amount of space the platform on top of the tower afforded, it would be easy to slip and fall to one’s death.

Once Lexa attacked Anya had to put her whole strength in defending herself against the woman’s vicious attacks. Lexa’s anger had fuelled her strength against any exhaustion and it quickly became clear that Anya would not be able to hold herself long faced with the incensed commander.

As the minutes trudged by Anya felt getting several hits that were bound to leave bruises but she bit through mutely taking Lexa’s rage in stride. She was aware how frustrating the last days had been for the commander and Anya knew that the other woman desperately needed an outlet before she would snap under the pressure.

Lexa’s green eyes seemed to only consist of rage at the moment and it became increasingly difficult for Anya to simply keep a hold on her sword.

The general felt blood run from a cut on her forehead down the left side of her face, normally Lexa would call an end to their sparring at the sight of blood, but the commander seemed blind to it at the moment.

With a pained grunt Anya lost hold of her sword and the blade fell down, colliding with the huge vessel of the ever blazing fire of Polis with a resonating crack.

Lexa had pulled her sword up ready to strike again and Anya barely managed to raise her arms shielding her upper body from the blow. The steel of the blade bit deeply into her skin painfully blood flowing freely from the deep gashes on her forearms once Lexa pulled her sword back, the blade gleaming with her general’s blood.

Anya let herself fall to her knees in an attempt to make her surrender clear. The commander stood facing her general panting heavily from the exertion but finally the woman blinked and she seemed to actually discern her surroundings again.

Lexa blinked a few times just now feeling the bitingly cold air against her heated skin, she also felt that she had taken a hit to the right sight of her rips but Anya did seem to have taken many more hits. With an almost guilty expression Lexa offered a hand to the general to help her from the ground.

Anya took the offered hand and as she stood blood immediately flowed from her forearms down her hands dripping into the layer of snow on the ground. The general only mutely nodded to the commander, no words needed to be exchanged right now, it was clear in the absence of the tenseness in Lexa’s shoulders that the sparring had achieved what Anya had hoped to, the commander had let go of some of her tension.

They left the top of the tower in silence, both breathing heavy. Stepping into the level where the commander’s quarters were situated they promptly ran into Clarke.

The blonde leader’s eyes widened at the sight of blood gushing from Anya’s wound and the bloodied sword in the commander’s hands. “Was there an attack?” she asked worriedly.

“No” was all Lexa answered and ignoring the blonde otherwise swept past her directly to the doors to her own chambers which were promptly opened in front of her.

Marie was still asleep peacefully when they returned but the guard seemed relieved to see them return before the girl woke. Lexa immediately dismissed him from her chambers with a simple gesture.

The commander put a hand on the side which she felt hurting slightly and frowned at seeing her fingers come back tinted in black blood.

Clarke had followed both of them intent on at least bandaging Anya’s wounds.

The general had caught sight of Lexa’s bloodied fingers “I thought I had missed” she remarked in what passed as an apologetic tone.

Lexa shook her head, she had caused her former mentor far deeper wounds after all.

“You are both going to get sick too” Clarke scolded when she felt how icy Anya’s fingers were cleaning away some of the blood.

Anya just looked at her with an annoyed expression “Your people might be weak …” she trailed off as the blonde cleaned the actual wounds.

“These need stitches” Clarke said getting her first look at the wounds, they were pretty deep and would need a long time without stitches to close.

Anya nodded as if to say “get on with it” patiently waiting for the blonde leader to treat her wounds, the general merely just gritted her teeth as Clarke threated a needle and a suture through the edges of the wound.

Lexa shortly lifted her own shirt feeling it sticking to her skin already, she was bleeding strongly than she had anticipated. The commander pulled the shirt over her head putting a cloth on the slight graze on her side.

As Clarke finished stitching up Anya’s wounds and also cleaned the gash on her forehead the blonde turned to the commander. A slight blush grazed her cheeks at the sight of Lexa partly undressed, standing in the room with only tightfitting trousers and her bindings covering her chest.

“Let me clean that for you” Clarke offered in a calm tone to the commander while Anya went into the bath to clean the rest of her blood from her arms and hands.

Lexa shook her head slightly “It is only a shallow graze” she said looking down at Marie’s sleeping form, the girl’s breathing still sounded rattling.

“Lexa” Clarke addressed the other woman her tone amending “I would feel better if it is cleaned”.

Lexa shortly looked at the blonde meeting her gaze mutely for a moment before she inclined her head in permission.

The commander stood perfectly still as Clarke carefully cleaned the black blood away from the wound.

“It is not deep enough to require stitches” Clarke informed once she could see the actual wound.

Lexa nodded with an expression that clearly told “I told you so”.

Clarke’s lips twitched as she snorted under her breath as she cleaned the rest of the unexpectedly soft tanned skin around the gash. She could detect a few scars adoring the commander’s body some obviously older than other and some deeper than others. The new wound probably leave only a thin scar, if it would scar at all. Without the heavy armour of the commander Lexa’s frame looked so much smaller and she was only slightly taller than Clarke herself. Standing this close to the commander Clarke noticed the dark circles under the other woman’s eyes.

“What was this about?” Clarke questioned motioning to the graze she was taking care off.

Lexa quirked her brow at the blonde who was obviously talking to her again before she sighed the tiredness returning to her eyes and mind “The last days have been testing” she answered her voice sounding exhausted.

Clarke bit her lip “I am sorry if I added to that … I can be rather … volatile sometimes”.

Lexa looked almost surprised at the apology but she inclined her head in acceptance.

The last few days had given Clarke a new purpose and she was thankful for that, she felt more herself than she ever had since landing on earth. She was worried her people would make a big mistake concerning Charles Pike, but she had learnt about herself that she did not wish to lead, she wanted to heal.

Although she did not wish to be involved in politics anymore Clarke said “Pike will be a problem” her voice tinted with annoyance.

The commander sighed straightening herself and Clarke watched the woman in front of her change from Lexa to her commander persona in the blink of an eye and even just in her trousers and bindings the woman seemed to emit a certain power.

“Anya already told me” she said anger resurfacing in her own tone.

Clarke could not believe her own words when she suggested “Can’t you have him killed somehow?”

Lexa tilted her head slightly “If my memory serves me correct you were the one to tell me that I can’t simply kill all I do not trust” there was a slight tease in her voice before she added after an almost mute sigh “Which is true in his case. Ordering his death would only serve in Skykru questioning me further”. Lexa had already contemplated what to do and she was sure that killing the man would not work for her favour, at least she could not be the one to order it.

“I could speak with my mother” Clarke mused desperately thinking about how to solve the situation at hand with Pike. She knew it was bound to enter in disaster if Pike got handed the chancellor’s pin.

Lexa shook her head slightly at the blonde. Although Clarke had claimed not to be interested in leading that she was called to it was obvious to Lexa. She had also noticed how the blonde seemed to flourish in her position as a healer. It was rare among her people to see leaders that were also called to healing.

When Anya returned from the bath room having dressed in clean clothes as well the general checked on Marie. The girl immediately jostled at the gentle contact opening her eyes. Risha who had slept curled up on the girl’s legs also perked up, the wolf cub had barely seen her human awake in the last days and the smell of sickness was heavy on her.

Clarke’s musings were interrupted when Marie started coughing violently again as she woke up and the blonde got to work to prepare a new tea for the girl which usually served to dim the coughing for some time.

Clarke had promised Laurel to go out into the streets of Polis with her. The unexpected start of the cold season had many of the citizens getting sick and the healers needed all the helping hands they could get to take care of them.

“How long will it hurt like that?” Marie asked in a whiny tone when the older girl gave the tea.

Clarke smiled slightly at the young girl “It will take some time, Marie”.

The girl pouted but Anya prompted her to drink the tea ignoring her antics.

Clarke excused herself from the commander’s chambers.

After Marie had drunk up the cup of tea the girl settled down again but she did not seem that tired anymore “Can you read to me?” she asked of Lexa.

The commander had written a few things down in her journal but closed it at the question, her eyes felt tired and lying down on the bed sounded very appealing at the moment.

Anya frowned at Lexa and Marie. She thought the other woman should just lie down and finally sleep.

In the end Lexa barely managed to finish more than a few pages before she fell asleep lying next to Marie on the huge bed. But as Marie had also dozed off cuddled against Lexa’s chest Anya just smiled at the sight, relieved that both were resting again and plucked the book from the commander’s limp hands putting it aside. It was a true testament to Lexa’s exhaustion that she did not even twitch in the slightest when Anya removed the book and covered the sleeping woman with a fur. The general retreated to one of the couches to rest there for the night on silent feet.

 

 

Chapter 108

Lexa had been so exhausted from the previous days that she fortunately did not wake from every slight cough from Marie lying next to her during the night. Fortunately for both of them the girl’s fever did not resurface during the night, so that both of them were much more rested when the commander woke the next morning.

When Lexa slipped from the bed Marie was still fast asleep and the girl’s breathing still sounded rattling but her chest seemed to move slightly more normal again, indicating that their charge was indeed getting better and hopefully had pulled through the worst of her sickness.

Anya was also still asleep on the couch a fur draped over her sleeping form, while Risha stretched out her furred back on the bed and hopped down from the bed to follow Lexa on silent paws.

The little wolf cub followed the commander into the bathroom where Lexa quickly got ready for the day. She knew Alira would soon come to braid her hair for the day and serving breakfast for them. She was well aware that she had a long and probably testing day ahead of her.

Rumours of Charles Pike gaining power among the Sky people had spread through the ranks of the ambassadors and Lexa was aware that she could not ignore the impending threat much longer.

Her people were too focused on their right for blood and the probability of an open war to appreciate Skykru offering their superior medical techniques to them.

The commander had shortly discussed with Raven from the Sky people what else they might be able to offer and the brunette engineer had come up with a plausible idea. The other woman had assured her that she had seen enough scraps of old tech around the merchants’ stalls around Polis to be able to build what they called a radio. She had seen first-hand the advantages of this kind of tech, making it possible to communicate without the need of sending an actual messenger over longer distances. As advantageous as this tech was and she was sure that the ambassadors would be interested in it, she was also aware that it would not be enough to placate the worried minds calling for the blood of Skykru.

Anya was awoken by Lexa walking through her chambers and softly speaking to a guard, sending him away to implore with Raven if the radio was functional. The commander had scheduled an early meeting with all the ambassadors and the Skykru delegation. If the meeting failed, she would be sending Skykru from Polis immediately giving them an ultimatum on their leave.

The general silently noted that the commander looked much more rested now, the dark circles under her eyes still present but considerably lighter again. She hoped everything would settle again once Skykru left the capitol, tensions were running high at the moment with the invaders in their city.

Later Lexa had planned to take some time for her nightbloods again, feeling like she had been neglecting them for the last few days. If Marie’s fever did not return she could even have them brought into her chambers, the children had asked after Marie as they had heard guards speaking about her disappearance and the fact that she had fallen seriously ill.

Marie did not wake up when Alira knocked lightly on the door and carried in breakfast. The older handmaid quickly got to work with Lexa’s hair, needing only a few minutes to put the commander’s brown locks into their usual designs out of various intricate braids. The older handmaiden brought worrying reports with her. As it seemed there had been riots in a tavern late last night and Pike had obviously caused them. The Skykru delegation had mostly gone there to entertain themselves but Pike had either drunk too much or just spoke out what he really thought his tongue loosened by the consumption of their strong alcohol, insulting all of their people, their culture and their believes and traditions. He had claimed all of them to be lunatic barbaric sadists incapable of living like normal people. Word of the riots would have reached the ambassadors just like it had reached her own ears and the same anger she now felt cursing through her veins would be expected a reaction from the ambassadors as well.

Marie startled awake once Raven came bursting into the room. She blinked her grey eyes open coughing immediately as she did and looked around confused by the sudden loud voices filling the commander’s chambers.

Raven had been unceremoniously awoken by the guard the commander had sent to her assigned quarters and it was obvious the engineer was less than pleased to be woken before dawn.

The commander looked unimpressed by the short tempered woman holding in hand what could only be the radio they had spoken about, while Anya glared at the loud Skykru girl for waking Marie in such a fashion and helped their charge to sit up clapping her onto her back softly in an attempt to make her stop coughing.

“Does your contraption work?” the commander immediately asked Raven her green eyes sharp. She would not be accepting any disrespect from the Sky people any longer, she felt the other clans would start to question her next if she did not do something to placate them soon.

Raven had an annoyed expression on her face, but the engineer nodded pressing a button on her strange contraption and bringing the thing to her mouth speaking directly into it “Clarke, this is Rave, come in”.

Lexa raised her brow in silent question when nothing happened after a few moments.

Raven rolled her eyes before she repeated the process, speaking much louder this time “Princess, wake the fuck up!”

A crackling sound was emitted from the contraption before words came from it “Oh god! Raven! The sun has not even risen yet!”

Raven smirked “Sorry to interrupt your beauty sleep then, princess, but your commander wanted to see proof that my radios work”. It was obvious the engineer seemed to take personal offence from the fact that Lexa had wanted a demonstration before showing the radio to the clans

The commander narrowed her eyes at the other woman in warning “And you are able to replicate this?”

Raven had paled slightly under Lexa’s glare but nodded quickly in reassurance.

“You will be called when the meeting commences” Lexa simply dismissed the other woman her expression making it clear that Raven better kept silent now.

Raven quickly left the room swallowing down the smart retort she had had on the tip of her tongue, knowing it would not be appreciated here.

Marie pulled a sulky face when Anya handed her a steaming cup of tea, the concoction Clarke had come up with tasted horrible.

Anya narrowed her eyes at the girl “You will drink it, Marie and without any contradiction”.

Marie pouted giving the general her best innocent puppy eyes “It tastes horrible. I am feeling better” the girl insisted. The effect was destroyed when she started coughing again and only Anya’s quick reflexes had saved the tea from being spilled all over the furs.

Clarke entered the commander’s quarters in exactly this moment. Lexa had given the guards posted at her chambers the instructions to let the blonde Skykru leader enter as she pleased while Marie was sick and she was entrusted with her care, she would withdraw the open pass once Marie was healthy again.

The blonde directly went over to Marie still lying in Lexa’s bed. She smiled slightly at the girl, it was obvious by the alertness in her grey eyes that she in fact felt much better, but she knew that this could be deceptive. “Even though you do feel better right now and your fever is finally down again, that does not mean you are suddenly healthy again, Marie” she directly addressed the girl her tone strict “You will need to stay on strict bedrest for at least five more days and after that you will still need to take it easy for a few weeks actually. Or the infection can develop into a chronic condition easily”.

Marie’s face fell completely a pout pulling at her lips “I don’t wanna stay in bed and I am not tired anymore at all…” her voice had a whiny quality to it but Anya seemed to be completely immune to her antics and met her pleading eyes with brown unyielding ones.

“Drink your tea” Anya said voice forceful and pushing the cup back into the girl’s hand.

Marie must have sensed that trying to sway the general’s opinion would not work so the girl drank the tea although her reluctance was obvious.

Clarke hid a smirk from the girl by turning around, she had given instructions to have thin oatmeal prepared for the girl for breakfast. The girl must have lost some weight over the span off the last four days fevering strongly and not eating at all, so it was even more important to get her eating something substantial again as soon as possible.

She brought the bowl over to the bed putting it into Marie’s lap. Anya snatched Risha up from the bed who had watched the bowl like a hawk and jumped up when Clarke set it down, putting the cub to its obvious displeasure back onto the floor. Clarke had added a slight amount of honey to sweeten the unpleasant looking slurry.

“Are you hungry?” the blonde asked the young girl with a kind smile, but the girl immediately shook her head with a sullen expression. “You need to eat” Clarke informed Marie with a sigh “Your body has used up most of its reverses”. 

Marie accepted the bowl into her hands pushing the spoon around reluctantly without eating anything at all.

“Eat!” Anya almost growled at the girl who looked up with innocent eyes pouting strongly, but under the general’s constant glare the girl sighed eating a few spoons rapidly as if to say “see, I am eating”.

“I will come and check on her later” Clarke said to Anya and made to leave the room.

“Stay” Lexa ordered calmly. She had watched the exchange silently, lost in her own thoughts. She had decided on which terms she would demand Skykru to abide to and thought it prudent to inform Clarke of them before she heard them later from someone else and could cause a public scene.

Clarke stopped in her tracks turning around with a frown on her face.

“I will be meeting with the ambassadors and Skykru again now” Lexa informed the blonde and continued before the other woman could interrupt her “Skykru will either be incorporated into the coalition as the thirteenth clan under Markus Kane or leave my lands.”

Clarke was looking at the commander with widened eyes disbelieve clearly written on her face. It seemed to take her a moment to find words for her racing thoughts “You can’t be seriously thinking my people will accept that?”

Lexa met her heated gaze without batting an eyes “They will. Or they will leave. It is as simple as that. I offer them a place among my people, a chance to thrive, it is their choice to take it. If Pike comes into power among your people, there will be an open war and I assure you, your people will die should it come to that”.

“But …” Clarke started but stopped after a moment obviously furiously thinking “You said you want Skykru to enter the coalition …”

Lexa inclined her head in agreement “Yes, but that will not happen if the clans remain this hostile to the mere idea. I cannot force them to accept your people with a sound mind. The clans would turn against me, questioning me, my decisions and my strength. I will not put my own life in line to protect your people like that. They have proven to be too unreasonable and foolish for that”.

Clarke clenched her teeth together in frustration “I thought you could do what you want…” resentment was clear in her tone.

Lexa mutely met her stare before she said jutting out her chin slightly “I could force the other clans to accept Skykru, but at what price? It would only serve to increase the distrust and animosity if I am seen to favour your clan. I have to think about more than just your people”.

Clarke shoulders seemed to fall in resignation “So you are basically telling me to pack my things?” a slight tone of fear seemed to tint the young woman’s voice.

Lexa inclined her head slightly confusion flashing over her features.

Clarke huffed in obvious annoyance “If my people fail to meet your terms and I doubt they will agree like that, I will need to leave with me being Skykru”.

Lexa shook her head “Those of your people who chose to live by our laws and traditions will be welcomed in Polis or in any other clan who would be willing to take them as refugees.”

Clarke seemed to have reached some sort of decision and her voice was firmer again when she said “Thank you for informing me ahead, commander”.

Lexa inclined her head and watched the other woman leave her chambers without another word, it was hard for her to judge what Clarke might have been thinking.

Anya looked over to the commander with a contemplative expression on her features. Lexa had not discussed her decision with her before telling the blonde Sky leader but she saw the reason in them.

“The ambassadors will demand more than the promise of healing and this radios to accept Skykru willingly” Anya remarked.

Marie was still eating the porridge silently, once she had started eating she actually felt pretty hungry. She had listened to the conversation between Lexa and Clarke with a frown, unsure of what that would mean to Skykru. Marie had not been awake yet when Alira relayed her report so she had no idea what could have happened.

“I hope it will be enough” Lexa said although she had her doubts as well.

“They won’t relent until justice has been served. Pike has affronted all of us deeply” Anya said having heard Alira’s words herself. She had already thought Pike to be an absolute idiot but this exceeded even her own imagination.

“Blood must have blood” Lexa said her voice strong and eyes blazing to which Anya only inclined her head.

The commander left her chambers after nodding to Anya, the general would be staying with Marie for now her attendance not required for this gathering.

“What is happening?” Marie asked worry on her young face.

“Nothing you need to concern yourself with” Anya retorted taking the finally empty bowl from the girl’s hands.

“But what if Skykru and the coalition are in a war…” Marie started her brows creased in thought “… what about me then?” The girl’s voice painfully reflected her insecurities at the moment.

Anya met her worried grey eyes slightly tilting her head “What about you?”

“I am Skykru” the girl retorted as if it was obvious what she thought.

Anya sighed under her breath before she made the girl look at her face now understanding what their charges supposed problem was “If the coalition attacks Skykru we will be at war. But you will be with us. You may be born of Skykru, but you will forever be with us now, no matter what will happen between the clans and Skykru, it will not change anything for you”.

Of course the general knew that would not be completely true. The girl was bound to be influenced by her people’s annihilation on a mental level, but it would not change her place as her own and the commander’s second.

Marie seemed relieved and nodded letting out a long breath which promptly turned into a yawn.

“Not tired at all?” Anya echoed the girl’s earlier words with a raised brow to which Marie looked rather sheepish.

In fact it did only take Marie a few minutes to doze off again, Anya merely adjusted the pillows around the girl tucking the furs around her small frame.

The meeting seemed to take longer than expected and Lexa’s mood was difficult to assess once the commander returned to her chambers followed by Titus on her heels.

Flamekeeper and commander seemed to be locked in a heated discussion and it took Anya a moment to decipher what they were discussing about. The meeting had as it seemed ended on an irresolute note. Skykru seemed to have begged for a few days of time to discuss their options and how they wanted to proceed. The clans had been rather reluctant to accept such but they had been appeased by Lexa calling out various terms to Skykru. She demanded amends for the village that had been burnt weeks ago and for the bridge which had been destroyed and had been an important route for vendors and for Charles Pike offending their very way of living.

The Skykru delegation had left or were at least packing to leave in the next hour, save for Pike. Lexa had assumed it prudent to put the man under arrest for the time being. She did not trust Skykru to make rash decisions and she wanted him removed from them immediately.

The flamekeeper was obviously completely against her side of the terms, mainly offering them a place within the coalition. But she had already proclaimed it, so they would be, if they were to choose this option. It was evident the man was angry the most about the fact that he had not been told in advance.

Lexa’s patience with the man seemed to reach its limit as she seethed at him “You are an advisor, flamekeeper, you do not hold commander over me!” her voice was forceful and her green eyes blazing dangerously.

The man seemed to take a step back at the fire burning in her eyes and he lowered his head in a sign of submission.

“You can go!” the commander snarled at the bald man who retreated immediately “And bring the nightbloods to me within the hour” she called behind him before the doors to her chambers fell shut behind him.

Marie had woken at the raised voices and looked rather alarmed at the unexpected outburst of the commander.

“When will the decision be expected?” Anya asked Lexa once the woman had turned to face them turmoil still flashing over her features.

“In five days” Lexa answered “Pike will die at dawn and Skykru will deliver their decision then”.

 

 

Chapter 109

Clarke stormed into the commander’s quarters just shortly after Titus had been dismissed. It was obvious the blonde woman was in a hurry, her strides were long and breathing elated, she had already dressed for travel in warm clothes as well obviously ready to depart from Polis in a moment.

Marie was still blinking sleepily her mind obviously still not awake yet.

Lexa had turned around to face Clarke her face an unreadable stony mask as she said “So you have chosen your side”. It was not voiced as a question but rather as a statement. Anya could easily spot the tale tell signs that Lexa was slightly disappointed by Clarke’s choice to leave Polis with her people.

Clarke immediately shook her head her blue eyes once again fiery and determined  “This is not goodbye” she said her voice grave with a variety of emotion. “I will make them see reason” Clarke promised seriously.

Lexa inclined her head slightly offering her forearm to the other woman to claps in the way warriors did to signify honour for the other. Clarke stepped closer and gingerly took the commander’s forearm the way she had seen it done by other grounders. Both women were locked in their gazes as if they were conveying through their eyes where words failed them at the moment.

Marie starting to cough broke their intimate moment abruptly and a faint blush covered Clarke’s cheeks as she caught sight of Anya’s barely hidden knowing smirk.

“Is executing Pike really necessary?” Clarke asked after a moment of silence her features twisted into a grimace. Even though Lexa had told her that she would demand it, Clarke had still hoped that he could get a milder punishment. The other girl had not been present at the meeting but someone from the delegation of her people must have told her what had been said and how the ambassadors had reacted.

Lexa just mutely nodded to the blonde leader her face once again perfectly blank.

Clarke sighed breathing out forcefully before she straightened and nodded to Lexa as well before she said “I will return with Skykru’s acceptance to enter the coalition, commander” her voice had something official to it before she smiled slightly “I have left my things here” she paused eyes almost hopeful “I will return!” With that words the blonde turned on the spot casting one last lasting glance at the commander and nodded shortly to Anya before she swept from the room.

Anya had a contemplative expression on her face after the doors fell shut behind Clarke.

When Marie’s coughing did not ease after a few moments Anya stood up from the chair next to the bed and prepared a new batch of tea for Marie. They had started to add more honey to the concoction or Marie was now almost impossible to convince to drink it at all.

Risha was lying on the huge bed together with Marie and the girl was giggling slightly, when she was not in the process of coughing, while playing with the cub.

Marie accepted the fresh cup of tea with a pout glancing shortly at the commander in the obvious hope the other woman might spare her from having to drink the horrible tea.

But Lexa seemed to be lost in her own thoughts while she shrugged out of her armour, discarding most of the regalia of the commander in the process.

Anya’s lips thinned into a harsh line as she forcefully pushed the cup into the girl’s hands and her voice was strict “You will not make me talk out with you if you are going to drink the tea or not. It is your medicine and it helps, so no matter what it tastes like, you are going to drink it and without the slightest bit of protest until you are healthy again, Marie”

Marie looked reprimanded and promptly took a sip of the tea only for her features to twist into a grimace of distaste and the pout also returning to her face.

The general lifted a hand to silence the girl’s upcoming protests glaring slightly at their charge “It is your own fault you are sick in the first place. You would not be sick at all, had you stayed inside the tower…” her voice was heavy with accusation now “…where you were supposed to have been”.  Anger flashed up in her brown eyes briefly at the thought that it had been sort of pure luck she had found the girl at all, had things played out differently their charge would probably have been killed by queen Nia already. The girl now looked completely abashed, lowering her eyes to the furs with her lower lip slightly trembling suspiciously as if she would burst into tears any moment. Anya sighed under her breath her features softening again calming herself with a deep breath before she squeezed Marie’s shoulder in silent reassurance. The girl’s grey eyes were swimming with unshed tears when she lifted her gaze.

Lexa had also come over to the bed and looked down at Marie with serious green eyes, the commander gently wiped the first tear falling from the girl’s eyes away “There is no need to cry, Marie” she reassured their charge as she set down on the edge of the bed “You have made a grave and foolish error by leaving the safety of the tower. But you are lucky to be alive to learn from it now”.

Marie nodded with a gulp. She had already understood that she had indeed been in mortal danger after Ontari had abducted her from Polis and she knew it was her own foolishness that had brought her into the situation in the first place.

The commander and her general bandied looks for a moment, Anya inclining her head subtly, before Lexa spoke up again. “Although your sickness is already punishment enough” the commander started her voice firm “You did broke our trust by breaking a rule put in place for your own safety. So after your bedrest, as long as we cannot trust you to remain in the places you are allowed to go, you will be staying with either of us, constantly.”

Marie seemed to contemplate the words before she nodded mutely a slight frown on her face.

But Lexa had not finished yet “And believe me, if you ever do something as foolish as that again, the consequences will be more severe”.

“I won’t” Marie quickly reassured voice honest and eyes clearly showing her guilt.

“See that you don’t” Anya pressed again, but even though their charge immediately nodded her head in eager agreement they were both aware that this was not something the girl could truly promise. She was still a child and she was bound to break other rules sometimes, but hopefully not in situations which would most likely kill her.

Marie started to cough again and Anya promptly glared at the cup still in the girl’s hands which was not even half finished yet.

“Where would Skykru go, if they leave your lands?” Marie mused after a big gulp from the tea obviously trying hard to supress a shudder at the tea, when the concoction cooled it became even bitterer. She had no idea if the council would want to be ruled by Lexa, they had not been overly friendly to the warriors when they had been at the Ark. Marie also knew from her very basic politic lessons from the Ark that the chancellor had always been elected and never just appointed as someone.

“The most likely is crossing the dead zone” Lexa answered “There is unclaimed land to be found there, but the journey is long and dangerous. Crossing the desert holds many unexpected dangers. But the other unclaimed lands lay beneath all other clans and Skykru would need to cross land from nearly all their clans on their path”.

“Are there other people?” Marie asked next her brow furrowed in thought.

“Beside the clans?” Lexa checked guessing what their charge was aiming at and when Marie nodded Lexa answered “There are reports of sightings of people living beneath the death zone and the Plain Riders and the Glowing Forest have also seen signs of other people when they leave their borders. But contact is rare”.

Since the clans had started to organize themselves under the united banner of the coalition contact to other tribes beyond their lands had gotten even fewer with the backup of the other clans to protect their borders.

“And the rest of the world?” Marie asked curiously. She could remember seeing a map of the old world before the bombs fell and most of the surface of the world had been heavily populated. So much that the countries had started to try to establish living quarters in space, which had been the reason the Ark had already been in space when the bombs ended the world.

Lexa had just opened her mouth to answer when there was a knock on the doors to her chambers, she knew it would be Titus bringing the conclave to her like she had ordered him to.

Marie’s expectant gaze had turned to Anya instead when Lexa stood to greet the nightblood children who slowly filed into the commander’s quarters. Anya snorted slightly before she shook her head “No one has probably travelled a great distance beyond the clan lands. It is possible that other areas are still habited.”

The children had varying degrees of wonder on their faces when they took in the grand rooms around them. Besides Aden who had been in these rooms once just after Lexa had risen to take commander and Aden had been the only nightblood not old enough to participate in her conclave, none of them had ever been invited into Lexa’s private quarters, the commander opting to keep their lessons restricted to official places.

Lexa watched how Thalu and Aden were both flanking Boo who noticeably looked more frightened than curious. The commander had asked her oldest nightbloods to look out for their new addition before the redhead could try to run away again. The boy’s dark eyes lit up starkly when he spotted Marie sitting in the furs.

Once all of them had entered the commander’s quarters Titus left without another word and the nightbloods all respectfully chorused a greeting to their commander and the general.

The commander ordered the group of children to find a place to sit down. Most of children just sat on the floor where they were standing and Lexa was surprised that Boo went around her keeping suspicious eyes on her the whole time before he stepped closer to the bed. He whispered a few words to Marie and Lexa assumed it to be an apology, the young boy had obviously felt guilty for what had happened to the older girl after she had helped him.

It was obvious that Boo did not dare to actually get up on the bed with Anya just sitting next to it, although the woman had schooled her features into a blank mask she still looked anything but welcoming to the young boy. Kyla who had watched Boo walk over to the bed seemed to think for a moment before she rose from her spot on the ground and without any hesitation just went past Boo and immediately climbed onto the huge bed. Lexa could see Anya’s hands twitching slightly ready to catch the girl should she fail in climbing the high piece of furniture. When nothing negative had happened after a moment Boo obviously straightened his shoulders and followed the other girl onto the bed his little fingers darting out to pet the wolf cub as soon as he was close enough.

Risha initially ducked her head slightly under the unknown fingers but a few moments later the cub had crawled up laying down between Boo and Kyla relishing the attention as both were now enthusiastically stroking the animal’s soft fur.

Lexa waited expectedly for Ryno to decide if he wanted to join the others or not, it was not hard to read in his roundish face that he longed to. With a small smile pulling at her lips Lexa gestured to the brunette boy to follow the example of his brother and sister and with twinkling brown eyes he leapt up from his spot and joined the other two. His movements were slightly uncoordinated and Anya quick in her reflexes steadied the small boy when he stumbled over his own feet directly front of the bed.

The other nightbloods all seemed satisfied to remain in the places they had chosen before so Lexa on the free edge of the bed slightly behind Marie enabling her to still look at all the nightblood children scattered around the bed. Marie immediately leaned against her side and Lexa placed an arm around the girl’s frame pulling her tighter against herself as she did so.

It was apparent that the nightblood children were all wondering why they were in her quarters exactly, although she had always tried to be relaxed rather than overly strict with them, she had always only seen their for their lessons, keeping a certain distance between the children and herself.

Lexa begun by asking the children how their last days had been as she had not been able to see any of them being to occupied with her other duties.

It quickly became obvious that the older nightbloods were confused due to the changes regarding Titus. They had already spent a lot of time with the man and they had of course noticed that they now saw him less being introduced to other and younger flamekeepers as well simultaneously. The change and what it meant worried them.

Lexa was as quick to reassure them that Titus would be focusing on other duties from now on. The commander noted how her three oldest and the two youngest seemed to be the most relieved at the confirmation. She herself remembered that Titus usually focused either on the youngest, forcing them to adapt as quickly as possible to the life of a novitiate, or on the oldest novitiates, constantly pushing them beyond their limits and being relentless with them for minor faults.

“I like Rana” Nymo commented helpfully. Rana was the young flamekeeper which now took care of the nightbloods through the day so that Titus only ever saw them to their lessons anymore. The young woman was born from Trikru. They had never spoken about liking Titus but it was glaringly obvious that the children all seemed to agree in their dislike for the bald man.

They also spoke about Boo and Marie and what both of them had done wrong. Both children looked rebuked but the commander also made sure to highlight that through making a bad decision they had the best chances to realize how to make a better one in the future.

Kyla sometimes very thoughtful for her young age asked if Lexa had done a gravely wrong decision as a novitiate herself.

The commander nodded with a sad expression on her features an old memory resurfacing. She had seen nine summers so being the same age as Marie was now when it had happened.

A fellow nightblood brother a summer older than her and she had made a sort of sport of sneaking away from the tower at night to go to the stream near the city. Titus had nearly constantly scolded them after they came to their morning training session tired from missing out on sleep. But that had not spoiled their fun at all and they returned for many nights, when the cold season came and the stream started to freeze close they made it a test of courage to inch onto the thin ice as far as they dared. Lexa could clearly remember that they had been told not to go there once the cold season had started. The stream was wide with a strong current so that the complete stream did not freeze until late into the cold season. They had of course not listened but her nightblood brother had died because of their foolishness. They had ignored all warnings and the boy had wanted to impress her sliding onto ice just to the edge where the water was still flowing strongly. Lexa could sharply remember his surprised yell as the ice gave under him falling into the icy current in the blink of an eye. Lexa had panicked trying to get to her friend trying to help him out but once she had reached the spot he had broken into the ice there was no trace of him. The current had already pulled his body far away and his screams quickly stopped being audible. Lexa had run back to the city with tears falling from her eyes shouting for help long before she reached the tower. The guards had found the boy’s corpse three days later miles from the city washed ashore.

The commander and Titus both had been incredibly furious with her blaming her entirely for her fellow brother’s death. She had been separated from the nightbloods of her conclave for a few weeks being kept under guard and Titus had been violent with her, making her miss training for almost two weeks until she could move her sore body well enough to participate again.

The children around her all looked abashed and Marie’s eyes glittered with unshed tears burrowing deeper against Lexa’s body.

Lexa banished the sad expression from her face turning serious again stressing again how important on one’s survival one single decision could be. The children all nodded their consent. She changed the topic to Ontari. Lexa knew that her novitiates had already heard of the arrival of the older nightblood girl from Azgeda and she could see some of them pale clearly afraid of what could have happened.

Thalu wanted to know if they should expect the other girl to join them in their training but the commander had truthfully answered that she did not know yet. Lexa had not made a decision regarding her yet, so she could not tell when Ontari would join them or if she never would. The older nightbloods soon discussed between themselves what they would decide if it was their decision to make. Lexa listened to them intently, while Aden and Thalu obviously were not sure on how to proceed Kato’s opinion was steadfast; he would have killed her on the spot. Aden and Thalu listened to his reasoning with a furrowed brow obviously not agreeing, debating that the other nightblood deserved some sort of chance to proof her right among them.

When Lexa switched the topic of their discussion from Ontari to what was happening with Skykru and Pike Kato’s opinion was the most extreme again, agreeing with the clans to march against Skykru as soon as possible not giving them a chance to integrate. Saria seemed indecisive but would order an attack as a precaution but agreeing with the others to give Skykru members who would not pick up any weapons a chance to integrate with the clans. Even their opinions varied if Skykru should be offered a place in the coalition or not they all seemed to agree instantly that Pike would need to die, stressing that people like him would make peace between the clans and Skykru impossible.

Lexa listened on to their lively discussions with pride in her eyes. The children were arguing way more soundly than a lot of the ambassadors ever did, making it obvious how much they had learned under their tutelage as novitiates already.

Lexa sent the nightbloods from her quarters when she felt Marie’s body slacking against her side, the girl had obviously fallen asleep in her arms. Ryno, Kyla and Boo also looked close to falling asleep any moment and the sun had already set ending another long day.

 

 

Chapter 110

Anya watched silently how the nightblood children obediently filed out of the commander’s quarters bidding her and Lexa a polite good night. It was obvious to the general how deeply the affection from the nightbloods to Lexa ran and most of them seemed to have adapted a similar way of thinking to their model. It worried her slightly that Kato seemed to openly disagree with most of the decisions Lexa had discussed with the conclave.

If the commander were to fall that very day and Kato the one to succeed her onto the throne Anya had no doubts that the coalition would crumble shortly after. But on another note she feared that none of them would be able to keep the clans together.

Lexa carefully pushed Marie down on the bed completely gently lying a hand on her forehead to feel for the girl’s temperature. The commander frowned when she found the skin slightly heated and clammy to the touch worry flashing over her features.

Laurel had left the instructions for another concoction to help lower a slight fever just in case Marie’s fever resurfaced and Anya already stood up from the chair. The older woman had seen the worry ghost over Lexa’s face and no further explanation had been needed.

The commander shook their charge’s shoulder slightly to rouse the girl again when Anya returned to the bed with another cup in her hand.

Marie was obviously only half awake and her grey eyes remained unfocused. Only after a great amount of gentle coaxing from the commander did the girl finally drink the tea. Lexa had slipped on the bed next to Marie and pulled the girl’s upper body against herself tilting her chin back and nearly forcing the tea down her throat. The girl drifted off into an uneasy sleep again as soon as Lexa had had her empty the cup.

Anya sighed “It seems it will take her some time longer to get back to health”. The general had hoped that with the initial high fever breaking they had surpassed the most difficult and severe part of the girl’s illness and she would now improve daily.

Although Clarke had cautioned them that pneumonia was not an easy disease and that Marie would need many more weeks to heal completely Anya had hoped that the other girl had been wrong in her assessment, but as it seemed she had not.

Lexa nodded similar thoughts rushing through her mind, but the situation with Skykru kept on bugging her relentlessly. It would be a waste if she had to call for the armies of the twelve clans to march against Skykru with the intent to annihilate their whole people. Even though their numbers were small Lexa knew that their knowledge and tech could be valuable to all of her people.

The commander had desperately hoped that now after they had felled their greatest enemy peace could finally blossom in the lands of the coalition. But peace seemed to dwindle into a distant future with the clans loudly calling for Skykru’s blood.

Lexa looked down at the sleeping girl in her bed and felt a painful pang in her heart. If there would be war Marie would need to march against the people she had been born to. She hoped Clarke would miraculously be successful in her scheme to make her people join the coalition voluntarily. The commander highly doubted that the blonde leader would even consider seeking refuge with her people opting instead to fight against the coalition’s armies.

Lexa would not put it past Skykru to try something idiotic out of desperation and she doubted it would sit well with them that one of their own was incarcerated in Polis at the moment awaiting his execution.

Lexa looked up from Marie’s sleeping form and met Anya’s probing gaze, she had felt her general’s eyes on her the whole time she had been silent in her thought but Anya had simply waited for her to make up her mind.

“Have an urgent messenger sent to Indra” Lexa ordered. TonDC was the next bigger settlement close to Skykru and would be better locate to keep watch over them.

“I want to know all movement in the Skykru settlement” Lexa continued.

Anya raised a brow at the younger woman “You think they will lash out?”

Lexa cocked her head slightly in thought “A desperate enemy is a dangerous enemy and Skykru have never made rational decisions so far. I would not put it past them and I don’t know how high Clarke’s chances to convince them really are”.

Anya nodded and turned around to carry out her orders when Lexa added as an afterthought “And the security around the streets and the tower will remain increased”.

Lexa checked Marie’s temperature again and it did not seem to have changed yet. With a sigh Lexa thought that it at least had not risen even higher.

The girl stirred slightly under the light touch to her forehead and Lexa shrugged out of the rest of her clothes slipping under the furs next to Marie. Blinking her eyes open Marie immediately scooted over to Lexa and cuddled against her chest with a contented sigh.

Lexa stayed awake and alert until Anya returned to her chambers some time later. The general nodded mutely telling her commander that her orders had been carried out.

Anya joined Lexa and their charge in the bed a few moments later. Now that Marie was not caught in the deep fevered dreams she had suffered the previous nights both of them were sure that her normal nightmares would return full force. They had no idea if being abducted from Polis with force had created new nightmares but both agreed it was probable and that Marie obviously would continue to need both of them at her side.

On the next morning Lexa slipped out of the furs long before dawn. Marie was still cuddled to her and Lexa carefully entangled herself from the girl tearing a whining noise of protest from their charge. Lexa smiled down slightly at the girl still trying to hold on to her body while the shuffling noises had already awoken Anya.

The general gently pulled Marie still more asleep than awake away from Lexa. Her own duties would not start until a few hours later, Anya knew that Lexa had scheduled an early training lesson with the older nightbloods and afterwards a meeting with the ambassadors as not all of them had been satisfied with Lexa’s solution to their demand of blood.

Fortunately Marie’s fever had not spiked fully again during the night allowing her to sleep through most of the hours. She had occasionally started to squirm when a nightmare started to form in her mind but either Anya or Lexa had been quick to calm her down again.

Lexa quickly dressed into clothing suitable for a training session. It had been some time now that she had last seen her nightblood children fight as she had been too occupied with other things to spare time to actually oversee their training.

The guards around the tower were still nearly doubled in their number and they all bowed respectfully to her when she stepped out of her chambers.

The streets of Polis were still mostly empty the citizens not risen from their beds yet. Snow had continued to fall and everything was covered in a lightly glistening layer of snow.

Rana was waiting with her four oldest nightblood novitiates. All four of them stood proudly next to the flamekeeper already armed with swords of their choice. The young woman nodded lowly to the commander and strode back in the direction of the tower.

Lexa greeted her novitiates and took up one of her own swords signalling Aden over to her swinging her sword around to loosen her wrists. Their swords connected with a resonating loud clanging sound and their training began.

Two hours later when the sun rose Lexa closed their training session. She sent all four of them back to the tower sure that all of them would be needing to see a healer. She had not gone easy on any of them and had been impressed to see their progress. Lexa felt blood trickling down her side slicking her shirt to her back where Aden had gotten a hit in. The blonde boy had made the biggest progress and she thought that he would be able to follow on her throne if needed.

Lexa had planned to meet with the ambassadors sometime later but she had finished their training lesson earlier than she had anticipated, freeing a few hours of her time.

The commander made her way back into the tower just as the streets around her were starting to fill with vendors to open their stalls in the market. Guards were still in the middle of the process to remove the snow from the streets which had fallen through the night and although the air hung with moisture it was not snowing at the moment.

The halls of the tower were also already bustling with handmaidens walking from room to room to fulfil their respective duties, breakfast was delivered to guests and beds were made, bathes were prepared and others carried messages to their destination. Lexa immediately was able to spot those handmaidens which had not worked in the tower long; their eyes seemed to get impossibly wide when they recognized who she was bowing extremely deep for her in exaggerated respect.

On impulse the commander left the elevator on the floor which housed the prisoners. Although she was not dressed in her full commander regalia the gold gear sitting on her forehead clearly identified who she was. Maybe it was even a good idea to meet Ontari first without the heavy armour of the commander.

The guards immediately stood to attention once she stepped foot on this particular floor. In passing Lexa noted that their numbers were still increased. The room a guard immediately pointed out to her was also guarded with additional two guards. Lexa mutely noted to ask Anya if she truly thought it necessary to post two additional guards.

Lexa motioned to them to open the door and she straightened her back before she entered the room. As the commander Lexa was aware that all the rooms which housed prisoners had the same layout and the same furniture. A simple bed, a small table and a stool. If the prisoners were more trustworthy they might be granted excess to a balcony but with Ontari the probability of her possibly trying to use a balcony for an escape route had been too high. The window of the room was small and warded by bars making an escape impossible through the small opening.

The dark haired nightblood girl sat at the table and the stool was positioned in a way that she had her back to a wall and her eyes trained on the door. There was a plate with some breakfast in front of her on the table which looked completely untouched.

The girl’s dark eyes glittered up at her clear of any fever “So you have come to kill me now?” there was a mocking edge to her tone but Lexa noted a slight quiver as well to it. It was obvious the younger girl was afraid but would never admit to it either.

Lexa stared down at the nightblood meeting her angry gaze unfazed waiting for a moment silence falling heavily between them. The commander asked after another moment voice sharp and eyes unreadable “Do you wish to die then?”

Ontari’s dark eyes flashed with an emotion too quick for Lexa to put a name on until they were masked once again. It seemed as if Ontari chose to remain silent instead of giving a verbal answer.

But Lexa would not have that, she knew that if Ontari wanted to have the slightest chance to integrate into Polis she would need to be honest with her so she simply waited in silence her green eyes boring down onto Ontari.

The next thing easily identifiable on her face was frustration; her eyes flashed and she ground her teeth together her jaw tense and posture rigid before she huffed.

Her answer was barely audible as Ontari breathed a “no”.

If Lexa were to announce Ontari as an official new addition to the conclave the Ice Nation nightblood would be enabled to challenge her for the throne of the commander. This particular law had been passed by a commander before her who had gotten his position by doing exactly that. The young man had been a better fighter than the current Heda and knew that he had a fair chance at a duel, challenged the commander and had won taking up the place of his predecessor.

“Good” the commander nodded letting some warmth infuse her cold stare.

Doubtfully Ontari raised a brow at the commander clearly second-guessing the other woman’s notice.

Lexa stared down at her fixing her with her probing gaze for a moment before she said voice important “You are correct that as a nightblood it is your blood right to one day compete in the conclave for the throne of the commander. I do not doubt you possess the combat skills needed for that but if you possess the political tact remains to be seen. Nia will have probably told you that as an official novitiate you will not be able to challenge me to a duel. You will have to wait for the conclave to come to pass after my death.”

Ontari’s expression clearly conveyed her confusion and also her open scepticism that Lexa was even considering to let her life. Her dark eyes were cautious but there seemed to be a question burning in them.

“You are free to speak your mind” Lexa remarked voice even and face honest.

The younger woman let out an indignant snort “So you will have me killed in training” she said brows raised mockingly.

Lexa thinned her lips in silent irritation before she took a deep breath “If I wanted to kill you, I would do so now and not go through all the trouble of finding out if you can be trustworthy”.

“Trustworthy?” Ontari retorted ironically.

Lexa nodded solemnly “Of course you will not be integrated with the other novitiates like that. You will have to prove that you can be trusted, before that you will remain under guard and receive only single lessons”.

“So I am still a prisoner than?” the nightblood girl wanted to know eyes blazing angrily.

The commander stared her down calmly “We both know why you have been in Polis. You have not managed to take me out or to assassinate the other novitiates”

Ontari glared up at her with the expression of a petulant child not getting their will silently seething in her anger at the reminder of her failure. But they were both aware of why she had come to Polis of course, running into the blonde sky girl had been a pure coincidence.

“So you are going to remain under guard until the moment you can prove that I can trust you” Lexa repeated voice strong “You can believe me, Ontari, I do not wish to kill you and waste a nightblood, but I will not hesitate if you remain a threat to me or my legacy”.

Ontari ground her teeth together audibly and Lexa feared she would break a tooth if she bit down any harsher.

“Your training starts tomorrow at dawn” Lexa proclaimed fixing the younger woman with another stare before she nodded and turned around from her. Ontari speaking up suddenly halted her retreat from the room.

“The girl…” Ontari asked her voice free of any malice and Lexa turned back slightly glancing over her shoulder to look at the girl’s face. She could only detect honest empathy in her expression as Ontari continued sounding uncharacteristically kind “… I heard the guards speaking about your second being ill …” the girl’s voice trailed off and her dark eyes were the most expressive Lexa had yet seen them.

The commander turned back around fully to be able to carefully watch the other girl and she nodded “She is, but she will live”.

Relieve seemed to flash momentarily over Ontari’s features and Lexa thought she had heard her exhale loudly in addition.

Something kept Lexa from leaving the room. Thus far she had only heard a very basic description of what had transpired between the nightblood girl and their charge. It seemed that Marie had somehow managed to form a weird connection with Ontari for her to actually ask after her openly where she did seem inclined to talk at all on anything else.

“What had you planned to do with Marie once you had gotten her out of Polis?” Lexa questioned her posture tense and rigid although she already knew the answer.

“Bring her to my queen” Ontari answered but Lexa noted that the words lacked a certain conviction and the other girl seemed to frown slightly.

“Would you do it now?” Lexa propped into her obvious hesitation.

Ontari opened her mouth as if to shot out an answer before she looked away glaring at the wall as if trying to set it aflame.

“She has created a life debt between you by saving your life” Lexa observed in a matter of fact tone.

Ontari ground her teeth together again before she huffed in obvious agitation “Yes she has” she begrudgingly admitted and her expression turned thoughtful brows furrowed deeply “I don’t understand why she saved me at all. It makes no sense that she would save me”

Her dark eyes glittered with frustration and it was obvious the girl must have thought about the matter without end through the last days and had still not found an explanation to what Marie had done.

“How has she saved you?” Lexa asked. Anya had retold her what Marie had said to her in the cave but afterwards she did not have the opportunity to speak with Marie herself.

Ontari seemed to think for a moment if she wanted to answer or not gnawing at her lower lip. Lexa waited patiently for her to make up her mind very much aware of the fact that this conversation would be setting the tone for their further interactions. If Ontari now chose to be honest and open it would be way easier to start to try to trust her, but if she kept silent or even worse lied it would put every word that came from her mouth to doubt.

“One of your guards managed to stab me when I tried to get into the tower” Ontari admitted as if the voice left a foul taste in her mouth “I had heated a dagger to seal to wound, but I had lost more blood than I thought. I fainted …” the girl trailed off for a moment and the frustrated confusion returned to her face “… the girl got away, but she returned, sealing the wound shut for me and forcing me to drink”.

The commander nodded her head mutely with a contemplative expression. The story matched what Anya had told her so Ontari had obviously spoken the truth. “And what would you have done?” Lexa asked after another silent moment.

Ontari furrowed her brows again “If I had been the prisoner?” she checked and when Lexa nodded in confirmation Ontari’s features twisted darkly “I would not have been that foolish”.

“So it was foolish of her to save your life?” Lexa retorted in an innocent tone eyes inquiring.

Ontari snorted again a light sneer on her face “What else could it have been?!”

“Marie has a unique way of thinking “Lexa commented vaguely folding her hands behind her back and feeling a painful tug in her side reminding her of her injury. She could partly understand that Marie might have believed to need Ontari to survive the night out in the wild but otherwise she had to agree with both Anya and Ontari that their charge’s decision had been slightly foolish.

“I have one last question before your lessons will begin tomorrow” Lexa addressed Ontari again and the girl’s dark eyes turned to her immediately “What would you do with the coalition if you become commander today?”

Ontari blinked at her a moment before she answered her voice slightly tinged with insecurities “Have Ice Nation take over, like Trikru …”

Lexa interrupted her with a rise of her hand “You think Trikru rules the coalition?” Although her face remained blank she felt a flash of anger, she had never favoured her own clan just because she had been born into it after forming the coalition.

“You are commander” Ontari commented with a sneer as if that explained everything.

Lexa sighed under her breath “You have much to learn still, Ontari”.

 

 

 

 

 

Chapter 12: Chapter 111 - 120

Chapter Text

Chapter 111

Anya woke to the feeling of soft little fingers gently ghosting over the scar on her abdomen left by the bullet that had teared through her upper body. Marie’s fingers were still free of callouses that marked her own fingers from the endless hours spent wielding weapons in training. As Marie’s temperature had still been elated during the nights the furs had been heated too much for Anya’s liking and she had shrugged out of the shirt leaving her only in her bindings covering her chest and a pair of shorts and she had also kicked down some of the furs during the night still feeling to warm exposing her abdomen to the cool air around them.

Marie’s grey eyes were once again clear and focused and a sheepish smile formed on her face when the girl noticed that Anya had awoken under her touch stopping the fluttering movements of her fingers immediately.

The general gently checked the girl’s forehead breathing a silent sigh of relieve at finding the skin once again normal to the touch. Both Lexa and she had been worried that their charge’s fever would return full force during the night.

“I had not wanted to wake you…” Marie said softly her expression clearly remorseful trying to supress a cough.

Anya waved off the girl’s senseless apology. She had not noticed being so tired still and had not intended to sleep at all after Lexa left but now the sun was already peeking through the curtains basking the room in a soft light indicating clearly that the day had started.

“Does it still hurt?” Marie asked in a worried tone her grey eyes still focused on the scar clearly visible on Anya’s body.

Anya shook her head “No” she reassured quickly. She had not felt anything in the still forming scar tissue after Marie had healed her wounds when they had found Clarke. She just now noticed that Marie healing her obvious wounds from that day must have also completely healed the gunshot scar which now clearly seemed to be years old instead of a few weeks. She internally filed that information away to speak about it with Lexa.

The alertness in Marie’s grey eyes already told Anya that she would have a hard time trying to keep the girl resting in bed the whole day. Although the girl would probably tire quickly she was obviously wide awake now and all traces off fatigue were wiped from her features for now, only the coughing and still slightly rattling breathing showing for the remaining sickness in her body.

Anya pulled the shirt from the floor still lying next to the bed after she had thrown it down last night pulling it over her head and shivering slightly at the coldness of the fabric. “Are you hungry?” she asked Marie after dressing into warmer trousers as well, before the girl could open her mouth to give an articulated answer her stomach gave the response rumbling loudly.

Marie frowned looking down at her stomach with furrowed brows while Anya strode through the room a smile tugging at her lips. The general told the guards to have a handmaid prepare breakfast for them and as an afterthought she also asked for a bath to be prepared. During her fever the girl had only been washed or bathed in cold water to bring down her temperature so a bath was in order.

Marie had set up upright in the bed when Anya returned to her side “You should have woken me if you are this hungry” the general reprimanded lightly.

“I wasn’t hungry before” Marie claimed in a huffed tone “Honest” she added when Anya just looked down at her doubtingly.

When Marie was obviously still trying to supress her coughs Anya busied herself with preparing a new batch of tea for the girl. Still remembering the scolding from the previous day Marie accepted the steaming cup of tea with only a slight grimace on her face.

After a moment Marie asked in a thoughtful tone “Do you get used to not feeling hungry?”

Anya blinked down at the girl for a moment in stunned silence caught off guard by the girl’s out of the blue question. “I suppose so” Anya answered vaguely “Why do you ask?”

Marie shrugged as the only answer and Anya glared lightly at her, she had told her numerous times that she did not care one bit for shrugging as a way to answer. When she looked up and caught the glare directed her way Marie elaborated “Feeling hungry has never really hurt before. In the Sky Box we often went without meals for a few times or only half rations for several days. But I did not remember it feeling that way.”

“Which way?” Anya pried brown eyes intently staring down at the girl “You are not this starved right now?” Although Marie had fought every bite they had forced her to take the last days she should not be totally starved.

Marie quickly shook her head in the negative “No, but I was in the cave. I did not remember it to hurt that much…” the girl’s voice trailed off before she added “But Ontari caught a small rabbit before you found us”.

Anya thought to spot a slight sliver of admiration in the girl’s tone that did not sit right with her at all. It also had not gone unnoticed by the general how Marie had said “found us” instead of “found me” and she did not like the implication of their charge’s words. But she internally wondered why the Ice Nation nightblood had gone through the trouble to leave her hostage alone to hunt and then actually share the game with her.

“Do you also have children?” Marie asked another question changing the subject so abruptly and unpredictably that Anya furrowed her brows at the girl’s obvious sudden curiosity.

“No” Anya shook her head and added with a frown “And I don’t know where you got this idea from either”. Once Anya had started the training to become a warrior and stepped out of the shadow of her own first it quickly became clear for her that she would never wish to settle down and raise a family of her own. She had risen through the ranks so quickly that she knew she would have needed to let any potential child be raised by someone else or putting down her sword forever. It was rare among high ranking female warriors to have children of their own, not unheard off like Indra had a child, but still rare. It was easier for a male warrior to impregnate his love and be gone on duty for several month at a time. She also could not even remotely picture herself taking care of a child of her own, she highly doubted she would have enjoyed the life of a mother. She had settled on another choice taking on Lexa as a second first, Tris later and now Marie.

Marie had obviously wanted to say or ask something more but was interrupted when handmaidens entered the commander’s quarters. A few brought plates with breakfast while others carried heavy pails filled with water to prepare the requested bath.

The girl eyed the pails with water suspiciously, even under the heavy fever she could still remember being forced into what felt like ice water repeatedly.

Anya motioned one of the handmaids carrying a plate with food over to the bed and the young woman placed the plate directly in front of Marie with a friendly smile on her face. Marie thanked her with an answering smile and Risha who had still slept at the food of the bed woke up nose twitching to the smell of the delivered food. When the cub crawled up the bed towards the plate of food on Marie’s lap Anya quickly grasped the small wolf by the fur on its scruff and put the cub on the floor beside the bed. Risha seemed to glare for a moment at Anya clearly offended and promptly trotted through the open door of the commander’s chamber following one of the handmaidens out. The cub had already learned that following a handmaiden usually meant going into the kitchen and someone always had something for her to eat there.

Marie opened her mouth with a light scowl on her face directed at Anya but the woman already raised a hand to silence the girl’s predictable protest. “No, Marie, we have discussed this already” Anya said voice strict and eyes unyieldingly hard “Your mutt will not be fed while you eat and most definitely not on Lexa’s bed. It’s bad enough that she already sleeps on the bed”.

Marie closed her mouth with a slight click remembering that Anya had previously assured her that Risha would not be allowed in one of the beds in Polis and now the wolf was lying in one at least for parts of the nights. The girl turned her attention to the plate of breakfast eagerly trying a chewy bright thing, she could not remember if she ever had tasted it before.

“What is that?” Marie asked after a few bites. The texture was extremely creamy.

“Cheese from milk of a goat” Anya supplied watching the obvious way the young girl enjoyed the new kind of food. A smile ghosted over her lips in silent relieve, Marie seemed to recover nicely and she acted more her happy and curious self again.

“But I had cheese before” the girl commented in a thoughtful way obviously confused why this cheese tasted so vastly different.

Anya nodded smiling slightly down at their charge her brown eyes soft again “Yes, but from a different animal. You will find many different kinds. They all taste different. The Rock Line Clan brings this one to Polis from a goat that lives in their mountains.”

“Mmhh” Marie nodded accepting the information as a given and abandoned all thought to totally focus on the food. Her stomach was still rumbling slightly what Anya interpreted as a sign that their charge was truly on the way to get healthy again.

They ate their breakfast in silence until one of the handmaidens addressed Anya “The bath is prepared, general” the woman said respectfully bowing slightly and Anya dismissed them with a mute gesture.

Marie pulled a face at Anya when the handmaidens had left “It’s not cold again, isn’t it?” a whine to her voice.

Anya snorted “No it is not, so you can cease with your attitude” her tone was even but laced with a hint of strictness clearly telling the girl to keep her attitude in check. The general pulled the furs from Marie’s body and offered a hand to the girl to hoist her from the bed.

Marie’s legs were slightly weak and felt wobbly and she head to lean heavily against Anya to remain upright a frustrated frown settling on her features. But Anya was next to her keeping her save on her feet not letting the girl fall.

In honesty Anya had expected Marie’s body to show sequelae of the illness still fighting through her system and she was not surprise to now actually see the waning strength in her body. She internally debated the wisdom of her decision to have the girl take a bath right now, but she would stay with her the whole time making sure the girl did not faint in the bath and accidentally drowned in the water. She herself usually felt better once she could wash the traces of sickness from her own skin and thought it would probably be the same for their charge. The girl’s hair was tangled as well, the braids had been removed on the first day but her constant tossing and turning during her fevered dreams and getting the ends wet with the cold water bathes had not helped.

Anya patiently helped Marie get out of the clothes discarding the pile on the floor for a handmaid to collect later and she absent-minded noted that a fresh pile of clothes had already been provided for Marie together with towels for later.

She carefully helped Marie step over the edge of the huge bathing tube and watched how the girl settled into the warm bath, a contented sigh leaving her lips and her eyes seemed to fall close on their own account.

“Don’t fall asleep now, Marie” Anya addressed the girl in a strict tone squeezing her wet shoulder. “Lean forward” she directed and when Marie obeyed silently her grey eyes fluttering open again Anya took up a sponge lathering the girl’s back with soap. After washing the girl’s back Anya wetted the girl’s blonde hair and repeated the process trying to untangle as much of the locks as possible now.

Anya passed the sponge to Marie with the order to wash the rest of her body and the girl took the sponge in suspiciously shaky fingers. Her brown eyes kept careful watch of more signs of fatigue in their charge and when she finished the task of washing the soap from her blonde hair, the locks were shining again smelling slightly off the herbal soap.

When Anya ordered for Marie to stand up again she actually had to hoist the girl up herself with careful hands under her armpits. The girl’s grey eyes were confused and her voice shaking slightly “Why am I so weak right now?”

The general lifted the girl’s body out of the bath setting her down on the floor but keeping her upright with a strong hand on her shoulder before she enveloped her in one of the towels quickly rubbing her down and drying her off.

Marie waited quietly while Anya dried her hair and body until the woman helped her re-dress into clean clothes. Her hands were shaking slightly and her legs felt useless unable to hold up her own weight without Anya’s help at the moment.

“Can I get back to bed?” the girl asked voice sounding exhausted once again when Anya directed her to sit onto a stool in order to re-braid her still damp hair.

A flash of worry passed over Anya’s features at the girl’s question. She knew that their charge must be feeling pretty off still to actually want to go back to bed as she had yesterday already asked to be allowed to leave the bed.

Anya sort of carried Marie, with most of the girl’s weight resting against her own frame, back into the main room abandoning the girl’s hair for now preferring to get her into bed immediately if she already asked for it.

Marie smiled weakly up at Anya once she was back inside of the bed and the general pulled furs over her body keeping her comfortably warm and her eyes were already closing again when Anya tucked the furs securely around her small frame, brows furrowed with worry. She had not expected the girl’s strength to wan this quickly. Marie would be expected to participate at the execution of Charles Pike from Skykru in four days but the general doubted the girl would be up to it if she did not improve quickly.

She gently checked the girl’s temperature again and was relieved that at least the fever had not spiked again. Anya looked at the girl’s face as she took her hand back and found that Marie had already fallen back into a peaceful exhausted slumber.

The doors to the commander’s quarters were pushed open again only a moment later. Lexa strode into her chambers with intent.

Anya took one look at her disgruntled state and stood from the side beside Marie “There is still warm water in the bathing tube”. Lexa’s hair were slightly wild, some strands had gotten out of their braids and were glued to her face and neck by sweat and the general could also spot some black blood as well.

Lexa nodded pulling the shirt over her head with a grimace when she pulled at the gash on her back. Anya had of course observed the wound and went back to the doors “I will call a healer”.

Lexa had opened her mouth to retort that it was barely a scratch and did not need the attention of a healer but Anya’s quick strides had already transported her to the door making her words null. The commander just shook her head sighing under breath before she disappeared into the bathroom. Anya had been correct and the water was still warm enough to allow a quick bath.

When Lexa emerged from the bathroom, hair damp and loose, Laurel and Alira were both already waiting for her together with an untouched plate of breakfast.

The commander let the healer inspect the gash on her back without protest and waited patiently while the other woman applied a poultice to assist with the healing.

Anya blinked her eyes in stunned silence when the healer turned to her and actually had the audacity to scold her for giving Marie a bath. But the general wisely kept her tongue in check, she had already seen herself with how quickly it had tired Marie out that it had not been the best idea.

An amused smirk danced over Lexa’s features while she watched Anya being on the receiving end of one of Laurel’s scoldings. The woman was one of the few to reach a high age but her tongue was still as sharp as ever and she had a reputation of making concoctions taste extra foully for those who had angered her.

Alira meanwhile pulled Lexa’s thick locks back into order re-creating the usual intricate braids with ease. When Lexa had not touched any of the food after a few moments the older handmaid shoved the plate into the commander’s direction with a pointed glare. With a slight eye roll Lexa started to eat.

When Laurel finally dismissed herself from the commander’s chambers leaving the general with a tensely locked jaw behind, Alira followed the other woman leaving commander and general alone.

“Who got the hit in?” Anya asked as soon as the doors fell shut behind them her voice tinted with the annoyance she obviously felt.

“Aden” Lexa admitted swallowing down a bite of bread and her eyes shone with pride for the blonde boy “He has gotten better than I was when I took command”.

Anya nodded with a thoughtful expression and a frown settling on her brows, she did not like the implication of Lexa’s words and she knew she would do anything within her might to keep Lexa alive and on her throne as long as possible.

“I have been to see Ontari” Lexa proclaimed pulling Anya out of her thoughts.

The general nodded waiting for the younger woman to tell her more and she looked questioningly at her for a few silent moments in which Lexa seemed to sort through her thoughts.

“I do not know what to make of her yet” Lexa said formulating her stormy thoughts into words. Her instincts told her to kill the nightblood girl and erase the threat she could pose, but something was keeping her hand from her sword to strike her down. “We shall see, if she is able to adapt as a novitiate”.

Anya narrowed her eyes slightly her voice cautious as she questioned “You will keep her here as a novitiate? With the others?” her tone got slightly higher on the last part.

Lexa shook her head “Not with the others, no. She will be kept isolated under guard until I know she won’t try to kill them the first chance she gets”.

“So never” Anya retorted bluntly with a snort.

Lexa looked at her former mentor with sharp eyes. Although they were in the privacy of her chambers where she could allow her to speak freely, she still hated how Anya sometimes so openly expressed her disagreement.

“She asked after Marie” Lexa chose to change the topic knowing it was useless to try to convince Anya that giving the nightblood might be the right decision, Anya looked up promptly eyes narrowing suspiciously. “She had heard guards speaking about Marie falling ill” Lexa added voice even “She seemed relieved to hear that Marie will live”.

The frown deepened on Anya’s brows eyes hard as she said “I do not trust her. Marie actually mentioned her today as well. She said that Ontari hunted a rabbit sharing it with her”.

Lexa nodded with a thoughtful expression “We shall see how Ontari will fare without Nia’s constant influence. It will certainly take time before the girl will show her true face”.

 

Chapter 112

Lexa had left her chambers shortly later after a guard had notified her that the ambassadors had already gathered in the throne room and were waiting for her. On her way there she reigned in her tumultuous thoughts pulling her calm and unreadable façade firmly in place, much depended on this meeting. Should she fail now to calm the ambassadors the atmosphere towards Skykru was bound to remain hostile if she forced them into the coalition against the ambassadors’ will.

She had dressed into her full commander regalia only forging war paint as they were not currently at war and the message of that would be loud and clear to all of them.

The doors were pulled open for her by guards standing post in front of the throne room and Gustus already stood waiting next to her throne. Titus stood waiting on the other side of the throne loudly announcing her arrival to the gathered ambassadors.

Lexa strode into the room over the red carpet her sash flowing down her back and coat swishing around her heels, her back straight and head held high proudly. She shortly met Gustus’ and Titus’ eyes before she turned facing the ambassadors.

All of them fell to their knees respectfully but Lexa spotted flashes of disappointment and anger on the faces of the ambassadors to the Lake People, the Plain Riders, Rock Line and Shallow Valley Clan, while the Ice Nation delegation openly sneered.

Lexa sat down on her throne crossing her legs casually and motioned with her hand to have the ambassadors resume their seats as well, she let her hard gaze sweep over every single one of them in silence for a moment before she raised her chin higher and loudly addressed them “The affront of Charles Pike from the Sky people will not stand”

Most of the ambassadors seemed to breathe a sigh of relieve and nodded in silent agreement hoping that their calls for blood were finally being answered.

“But we will not march against Skykru…” she continued in a calm voice and when she saw the Ice Nation delegation banding silent seething glares she added “…yet”

“Skykru have been given an ultimatum of five days” Lexa elaborated. Not all clans had been represented in the meeting she had made the previous rendition so she repeated all of it. “They have five days to either leave Trikru land or bend their knees to the laws of the coalition, joining as the thirteenth clan”. Only the clans which had still contemplated to open trade with Skykru had been present at the last meeting but with what Pike had done the night before the meeting it had been useless to show them the radios.

She enumerated the demands she had already voiced against Skykru and waited for the ambassadors reactions.

The Desert Clan ambassador positively surprised her when the dark skinned man stood from his seat and began to speak after a subtle nod from the commander “I agree with all of you that these invaders have no claim on our land but now that they have fallen from the stars, should we really wipe them out? The tech they showed was impressive and we cannot deny their superiority in healing. Too many of our young die before they can grow strong”.

Lexa nodded again to him her face still blank thankfulness ran through her mind for the seasoned warrior. She had not expected the Desert Clan to give their open support to her like that.

The ambassador from the Boat People backed up his words, but no one was surprised by that. Luna’s people scorned on open war and bloodshed and the woman had never sent her warriors but rather aided with supplies when she had called on the clans before. The clan was too small and isolated to have an actual need for skilled fighters.

When the Broadleaf ambassador also added his own piece of opinion stressing that as long as Pike was executed and Markus Kane trustworthy they could always go to war against Skykru at a later point. It was clear the man agreed that Skykru could offer them knowledge that had the potential to better their lives, knowledge that had been lost through the clans after the bombs ended the world and pure survival had become more important than to preserve the knowledge of technology.

The Ice Nation ambassador loudly tried to recur to arms immediately and Lexa silenced his rant with a single mute raise of her hand keeping her expression bored on purpose. Fortunately the other ambassadors did not look really impressed by his angry words either. Lexa breathed slightly easier noting internally that the clans had accepted her terms and were pacified by Pike’s impending execution and the promise of some Skykru tech as an apologizing gesture.

She had not discussed this with Markus Kane but she was sure she could convince the man easily to supply the clans with something useful but harmless. The commander knew that now all depended on Skykru again and she swallowed harshly hoping that Clarke would be successful and Skykru would just accept to join the coalition but in her heart she knew it would probably not be this easy.

The commander dismissed the ambassadors shortly after satisfied that they seemed to accept the wait until a final decision was made. Some of them seemed to even like the idea that Skykru could still decide against the coalition and they might still get the war they were all waiting for.

Titus and Gustus remained behind and Lexa knew already before her former teacher made to speak what he would have to tell to her, the tenseness in his frame and how he had constantly clenched his jaw were plain enough to not need words as further clarification. But she was aware that she had constantly denied to listen to his counsel since Skykru was involved and she did not intend to antagonize the man further, so she settled back into her throne and waited for his rant to start.

Lexa was not disappointed in her prediction and Titus immediately started to rant about the seemingly endless dangers Skykru could mean to them. She patiently listened to him listing off all the threats the people who fell from the stars posed to them, recognizing them for the little and big things she herself had already seen as well. But where Titus chose to close his eyes completely in regard of the advantages a lasting alliance with Skykru could bring Lexa was unwilling to disregard them.

“I have to agree with all of your points, Titus” Lexa answered face blank and voice calm even after Titus had run out of arguments. A sliver of surprised flashed over the bald man’s features clearly not having expected her agreement in the matter and his face showed confusion why she had still not called war on them if she did agree so wholeheartedly. “But while I do also see the threats, Skykru do not necessarily have to remain a threat to us, Titus” Lexa continued. Titus’ face lost his confusion in the blink of an eye and slight anger washed over it instead mixed with obvious frustration that he had failed to convince her of his opinions.

She knew that repeating the arguments speaking in favour of Skykru would not sway the flamekeeper who seemed so steadfast in his disapproval so Lexa did not even try to. “It is their own decision now” her words rang with finality putting an end to the discussion for now.

“I expect you to take up Ontari’s training tomorrow at dawn” the commander addressed the flamekeeper whose eyebrows shot up in open surprise.

“No novitiate has ever been this old, Heda” the man sat cautiously clearly trying not to defy her again.

Lexa nodded “I am aware of that, Titus. And she will remain isolated from the rest of the conclave. Nia’s shadow is strong around her, she will need to prove that she can step out of it and show that she is deserving of the nightblood.”

With cutting down his time with the other nightblood children and mostly restricting his time with the younger ones especially, she had already deeply affronted the proud flamekeeper so giving him another as important duty seemed a fitting way to appease the man and to show him he still held her trust. “You will be responsible for her tutelage on your own for now. I will trust your judgment of her character”.

Lexa instructed him to give her daily updates on his progress and that she wished to see the younger girl for herself every few days. In addition she ordered the man to bring up the journal of the first commander, the man was less pleased with the order. It was obvious she wanted Marie to continue to read even though she was supposed to stay in bed. Titus tried to argue that the book had never left the temple and that he did not see the sense in making even more exceptions for the girl, but Lexa had just met his angry gaze with a cold glare of her own sitting up straighter in the throne and after a moment of silent staring the man conceded finally. Afterwards she immediately dismissed the man as well.

The sun had already moved quite a distance over the horizon as the meeting had taken much longer than Lexa had anticipated. But she had no other duties to attend to for now giving her the opportunity to return to her quarters for now.

Marie woke from her slumber when Lexa returned to the commander’s chambers. The woman immediately discarded her red sash and shoulder guard on a stool and a smile pulled at her lips when she spotted Marie sitting up in the bed. Anya had just looked up from the maps she had been studying intently. The general was not convinced that Skykru would actually take Lexa’s offer and was searching for a path Skykru could take that would afford them to reach unclaimed land quickly. She knew Lexa would be advising them on where to go should they refuse her offer, trying to steer them from clans that would immediately kill them one by one if they travelled through their lands.

The girl felt refreshed again after being asleep for several hours now, but she was content to stay under the soft warm furs for now remembering the way even the way to the bathroom and the short bath had drained her strength almost completely.

Lexa smirked slightly at the picture the girl presented. Her blonde hair had obviously still been damp when she fell asleep again and her hair now resembled the nest of a bird.

Anya’s eyes followed Lexa’s smirk and the older woman groaned slightly at the mess of the blonde locks entangled completely again. The general strode into the bathroom and retrieved a wide-toothed comb motioning the girl mutely to scoot over in the bed so that Anya could slide behind the girl to start the task of detangling her hair.

“How did the meeting go?” Anya asked once she started working on their charge’s hair. Risha, who had returned after being fed in the kitchen, hopped onto the bed again and promptly curled together in Marie’s lap under the girl’s gentle strokes to her fur.

Lexa stood bend over the maps Anya had left behind beside the bed inspecting them herself before she straightened herself. She already knew that the only reasonable path for Skykru was to travel to the dead zone and the land of the Desert Clan, with the way their ambassador had vocalized his support today she knew it would be relatively easy to convince the Desert Clan to let Skykru travel through their lands unharmed giving them an actual chance to reach unclaimed land.

“Better than expected” Lexa answered shuffling the maps together to put them back into their place “The Desert Clan will surely let them pass if it comes to that”.

Anya nodded accepting the younger woman’s words without question. When she shortly glanced out of the window she cursed under her breath discarding the comb carelessly.

Marie looked up confused when Anya slide out behind her again only a moment later and the general immediately dressed herself into her training armour quickly fingers almost fumbling with the clasps in her haste.

“I had scheduled to meet with your unit to assess their particular skills at midday” Anya called over her shoulder back at Lexa. The commander lightly shook her head with a smirk tugging at her face, it was so unlike the general to forget the time like that. It spoke volumes about the way Marie’s presence had changed Anya or in all internal truth both of them.

At her hasty retreat from the commander’s chambers Anya promptly physically crashed into Titus not heaving heard the doors already pulled open for the flamekeeper. They were locked into a silent glare both their eyes burning angrily until Anya snarled for him to move out of her way and made her way to the elevator impatiently tapping her feet for the contraption to open for her.

Marie blinked at the obviously disgruntled bald man who shortly glanced behind Anya’s retreating form anger clear on his face as he straightened his robs again and she noticed a book clutched in his hands.

The flamekeeper put the book on to a table his gaze clearly conveying that he was still displeased at having to remove the book from the temple, but he wisely kept his tongue. As Lexa had nothing to discuss with the man at the moment she dismissed him immediately after.

The commander stored away the maps Anya had browsed through and retrieved the book handing it over to Marie. As soon as Marie stopped stroking Risha in favour of accepting the book, the wolf cub actually looked accusingly at Lexa. It was obvious the small animal was intelligent and most loyal to their charge, the commander was sure the wolf would be deeply protective of Marie later on as well, already proving her worth.

Lexa took up the comb Anya had left on the side of the bed and resumed her general’s place behind Marie. Anya had barely started the task and the girl’s hair was still in complete disarray. Lexa’s fingers were gentle on the blonde soft tresses as she worked the knots from them, some coming lose easier than others. She would put braids into Marie’s long hair later to keep it from tangling this badly again.

Marie browsed through the book searching for the page she had read last, but she did not find it. It had been several days ago and she seemed to have forgotten somethings, so Marie just started somewhere in the first pages.

Easy silence fell between them, while Lexa combed out Marie’s hair and the girl was completely engrossed in the page she was reading. Risha had left Marie’s lap with a sulky glance at the girl and was now sleeping at the foot of the bed.

After a few moments Marie stopped her reading brows furrowed in thought and she abruptly twisted her upper body to face Lexa which resulted in the comb tangling in an especially stubborn knot and the girl winced when Lexa pulled at her hair involuntarily.

“You should keep still when someone combs your hair” Lexa admonished gently working the tangled comb loose from the long blonde hair with quick fingers.

Marie nodded but her brows were still furrowed in concentration “Lexa, where was the first commander from?”

Lexa frowned down at the girl slightly “It is said she ascended in a sliver of flames into what is now Polis and gathered the survivors organizing them and founding Polis”.

“In flames?” Marie questioned her own frown deepening “I think I know where the name comes from” the girl mused voice cautious.

Lexa looked at her encouragingly to share her thoughts.

“I guess it was not Polis but Polaris” Marie mused and she remembered the pod she had seen down in the temple and the faded letters on its outside.

The name rang a memory in Lexa’s mind and she distinctly remembered reading the name in this very book but much further ahead than Marie was yet.

“Where have you heard that name, Marie?” the commander asked tone gentle but eyes intent.

“In a lesson about the Ark’s history” Marie supplied turning around slightly to face Lexa fully and she tilted her head slightly in thought trying to recall exactly what she had heard. “Polaris was a research station and should have been the Ark’s thirteenth station, but it was destroyed when the other twelve stations joined on Unity Day” the girl recalled after a moment of silence.

Lexa took the information in silently mulling it over in her head. If what Marie implied was true, then it seemed that the first commander could actually come from Skykru.

“So the first commander was from the Sky as well” Marie expressed Lexa’s very thoughts her grey eyes shining with concentration.

Lexa nodded with a cautious expression. She doubted it would go over well if the clans knew that who had founded their very culture was in a sense Skykru as well. But in another way it might help them accept Skykru better, recognizing that they shared the same ancestors. So little was known still about their actual history just after the bombs fell that it truly was in the realm of possibility for Becca the first commander to come from the sky as well.

“You know that you are only allowed to discuss what you are reading there with a flamekeeper or me, Marie?” Lexa checked guiding the girl back around so that she could finish with her hair, she had already worked out most of the knots with just a few stubborn ones left before she would be able to braid it again.

Marie nodded and Lexa added “Not even with Anya” her voice was sharp and she waited for Marie to nod again although the confusion was obvious in the girl’s face as she twisted around again.

But Marie nodded, she might not understand why she was not allowed to speak with Anya but she had noticed how strict Lexa’s voice had become and knew that the woman was serious. Lexa was not concerned with the girl speaking with Anya per se but rather of who could overhear them. The girl was still speaking freely without the conscious thought that someone else might hear her and use her words against them later. Lexa would be the one to speak with her general about Marie’s discovery and in an environment where she was sure no one could accidentally listen.

 

 

Chapter 113

The commander was aware that she did not just have to speak with Anya about Marie’s findings because she wanted to share what this could mean to the coalition with the woman she trusted most. But more pressingly she would need to have a discussion with Titus. As adverse as the leading flamekeeper was against Skykru Lexa could only speculate how much his believes would be tested with this new information.

“There is also an escape pod in the room where Titus showed me the book” Marie jolted Lexa out of her deep thoughts by speaking up suddenly again.

“An escape pod?” Lexa echoed the foreign words which felt strange on her tongue with a frown.

Marie nodded twisting around again, her face open in its curiosity and the girl was obviously pleased to be able to supply something the commander did not know yet “It’s a small pod, like the one Raven landed in, only for a single person. It had Polaris written on the outside”.

Lexa’s brows furrowed, she had spent countless hours in the small temple and she could remember the small metal contraption Marie must be speaking about. The flamekeeper had not been able to answer her question of what this thing had actually been or what its purpose could have been. Her mind supplied her with an almost graphic memory of the contraption and she could picture the faded letters on its outside as if she was standing in front of it.

“But the “A” and “R” must have faded, so “Polis” was left” Marie mused with a little shrug wincing immediately at the movement because it had jostled her still healing injured shoulder “Becca must have come to earth in the escape pod from Polaris”.

“It is a possibility” Lexa remarked nonchalantly her thoughts swirling wildly through her mind and she decisively turned Marie back around with a strong hand on her uninjured shoulder and quickly plaited a series of braids into her blond locks securing them in place with thin leather cords.

Marie was slightly confused why Lexa obviously did not wish to speak about the matter but the commander’s tone had been clear enough so she kept her mouth shut. She internally mused why the survivors on earth had lost all kind of technology and electricity if the one who sort of founded Polis was from a space ship, but on the other hand all of their ancestors had once lived in a world where technology was normal. She had seen first-hand what devastation the missile from the Mountain had done to TonDC and she internally wondered how the earth must have looked like just after the bombs had fallen with most cities probably burnt to the ground.

Alira brought a tray with dinner for them into the commander’s chambers a moment later. Lexa admonished Marie to put the book away onto a table next to the bed already imagining the girl accidentally spilling some of the stew over the precious pages and Titus’ reaction to such carelessness.

Marie obeyed immediately without any protests still remembering Titus’ warning and knowing that the man did probably not make empty threats, although she doubted Lexa would let the man actually harm her she did not want to put this theory to test.

The stew smelled divinely and little chunks of meat swam in a dark kind of sauce with undefinable vegetables. Alira gave Marie a small fresh loaf of bread to dunk into the stew with a friendly smile, the older handmaiden of course also worried for the blonde kind girl and was relieved to see her on the road of recovery.

Lexa nodded to the older woman accepting a bowl of stew and some bread as well before she ordered “Have Titus summoned to me”. Alira nodded immediately that she understood and left to search for the flamekeeper.

“What happens if Skykru doesn’t want to join the coalition?” Marie asked between some bites shuffling on the bed until she could look at Lexa balancing the bowl of stew cautiously so that she did not spill some of the contents on the furs.

“Skykru will need to leave the clans’ lands immediately” Lexa answered easily spotting that the girl obviously had more questions she wanted to ask. Both she and Anya had already wondered about the lack of reaction from Marie besides fearing that she would be sent away from their sides forever. “Speak your mind” she encouraged with soft eyes.

“And if they don’t?” Marie questioned after a moment worrying her bottom lip between her teeth.

Lexa gently reached out pulling the girl’s lip from between her teeth when she started to bite down rather forcefully “The clans will march against them” her answer came easy again.

“Now?” the girl questioned with a furrowed brow.

Lexa sighed “Marching after the cold season has started would be suicide. But the clans closest to the Skykru settlement might wish to march before the cold season eases, forcing Skykru from our lands. If they have not left until the snow melts and the armies have combined Skykru will be extinguished to the last child”. Her voice was grave and eyes hard. Lexa dearly hoped both alternatives would not come to pass.

She knew all too well how a battle fought while the lands were still frozen under snow looked like. Still as a second she had accompanied Anya to a huge raid against Ice Nation and although Trikru land had not yet frozen over, snow and frost had already spread through Azgeda surprising them in their path. Many warriors and their mounts had frozen long before they could reach their destination. Many others suffered frostbite losing toes and fingers to the harsh coldness and she still could remember the bone deep chill that had not seemed to want to leave her body even weeks after they had finally returned to Trikru lands. Game was not easy to find when the earth was buried under a deep layer of snow and they had soon run out of food, the hunger mixing with the exhaustion and unrelenting coldness forcing them to retreat from Ice Nation before they even reached close to their destination. Lexa had seen warriors freezing overnight in their bedrolls or falling from their horses suddenly from exhaustion and even horses suddenly dropping from exhaustion and she would not march her own men into the harshness of the cold season if she could help it.

Going against Skykru in itself without the full force of the army of all the clans united would result in many unnecessary losses on her side. The commander judged that Skykru would run out of ammunition rather soon in an open out war but still every warrior who would fall under their bullets would be dearly missed in the clans once the snow melted and the fields needed to be tilled again and storages foraged. Lexa was all too aware that war bled the clans in more than just the obvious way, weakening the clans by the loss of pure manpower, thinning out their ranks even more.

On the other hand giving Skykru time until the cold season eased posed the very big probability that they would use the cold month in preparation making them even harder to kill once the clans could march against them united. With the way how agitated the coalition already was Lexa was not sure she would be able to reason with them to wait for spring to bloom.

Marie’s frame was wracked by a shiver running through her at Lexa’s words. She could not stop her mind from conjuring images of the burning carcass of the Ark, a bloodied patch of land before it and the twisted halls of the Ark filled with the bodies of the dead, cut down by swords. Her breathing quickened against her will and she started to cough violently immediately, her lungs obviously not pleased with her change of breathing.

Lexa gently clapped on the girl’s back after prying the bowl from her fingers and when that did not help she stood from the bed preparing a tea for the girl quickly. The woman returned to the bedside with the cup in her hand waiting for Marie to stop coughing at least for a moment to be able to make her drink the first sip which usually served to help sooth her throat.

The doors to her chambers were pushed open again declaring Titus’ arrival. The man stopped dead in his tracks watching the commander taking care of the blonde girl with gentle hands and patience. Lexa only turned around to face the bald man once Marie had finally stopped coughing and was sucking in some laboured breaths trying to get air back into her lungs. The commander continued to rub the girl’s back soothingly for a few moments until her breathing had settled as well and she guided her charge to lie back down, the girl’s features once again showing some signs of fatigue.

Lexa stepped from the bed over to Titus picking up the journal of Becca the first commander. She chose her words for a moment searching for way to break the news to the flamekeeper “Marie has found a connection between Becca Pramheda and Skykru” she said cautiously.

Titus’ dark eyes widened instantly his lips forming a thin line of irritation. While Marie had heard Lexa say her name and forced her eyes to remain open even though she felt sleep tugging at her mind trying to lull her in.

“That is not possible” the man seethed through forcefully clenched teeth trying to deny any affiliation between their origins and the people from the sky.

“Is it not?” Lexa questioned voice carefully even, not rising to his anger “Marie reported of a space station called “Polaris” which did not join their Ark but was destroyed. The metal contraption in the temple is an escape pod and it did not say “Polis” but “Polaris””.

Titus mouth fell open his dark eyes minutely boring into Lexa’s green ones before he looked around her his gaze taxing Marie intently, searching her tired face for something. The girl had listened to Lexa’s words and was nodding slightly to back up her words.

“What do you know about the flame?” he now directly addressed Marie in a cutting tone.

But the girl only blinked her tired eyes confusion clouding her expression. She had not reached a part in the journal where something specific was said about the flame and she did not know anything besides what Lexa had told her, namely that it somehow was or contained the commander’s spirit.

“She does not know anything, Titus” Lexa cut in sharply making it clear that the man could ease up on Marie. From everything the girl had told her about her life on the Ark, the commander was aware that Marie had been too young to know anything specific, her general schooling just starting. But she understood the way of Titus’ thoughts, there was a distinct possibility that Skykru might know something about the origin of the flame.

“Who knows about this already?” the flamekeeper asked voice wary and face showing some exhaustion.

“No one, besides us now” Lexa reassured her former teacher. It remained unsaid that she would let Anya in on this secret as well.

The man nodded mutely his thoughts probably thrown into the same turmoil her own were at the moment.

This new events brought only an endless number of new questions and Lexa was not sure they would even want to know the answers. What did Skykru know about the flame? Did they know how it worked? Did they know its actual purpose? What did they know about the first commander? Or about the bombs that destroyed their world? What would or could all of this new information mean to the clans?

In the end Titus argued that they needed to keep this as secret as possible. The flamekeeper feared that the clans might even turn against the commander and the whole idea the figure of the commander was representing if the connection between the first commander and Skykru, who were generally hated between all the clans, came to light.

Lexa’s eyes widened momentarily at this argument. Although she had already considered many outcomes, this particular one had not come to her mind yet. But she could not deny the truth in the flamekeeper’s counsel, it might truly turn the clans against the whole concept which was basis to their culture.

Titus had taken up to striding through the chambers clearly agitated and lost in his own thoughts. He had taken the journal of the first commander and was either searching for something specific or spontaneously browsing through the worn pages.

Marie seemed to have fought off the tiredness for now but Lexa did not like spotting the worry for her own person in her big grey eyes, Titus constantly striding the length of the room seemed to only frighten the girl slightly. “Why would that put you in danger?” the girl asked after long tense moments her voice barely above a whisper and her features drawn with obvious worry.

Titus had not yet witnessed the close bond that really connected Lexa to Marie and when the commander saw him making to speak probably berating the girl for even questioning something at all, Lexa silenced him with a simple gesture and returned to the side of the bed, sitting down on the edge of the mattress.

She took on one of the girl’s smaller hands into her own and squeezed it reassuringly explaining in a gentle voice that their very beliefs were based for a huge part on the concept of the flame as the vessel for the commander’s spirit. The clans believed that a commander was worthy and trustworthy to lead them well when the spirit had chosen them. She tried to explain the even slightly religious aspect of their belief. This belief would be put to a hard test if it was now suddenly linked to Skykru who so openly despised their way of living, relying totally on technology, no signs of honour and belief in them.

“But the clans would not call for your death, would they?” Marie asked brows furrowed. The concept of any kind of religion was strange for her, her parents had not been religious after all.

Lexa let warmth infuse her green eyes catching instantly that the girl was not worried the slightest bit for the commander but only for herself as Lexa, when she answered her voice was grave “They might, Marie”. Her answer was bluntly honest but Lexa knew that being commander had always been walking a fine line, angering the clans could easily make them question her demanding a stronger commander to take up her mantel, but if the clans now were to decide that they did not need any commander any more she was sure chaos would take reign, fracturing the clans once again in a strife for power.

The girl actually hung her head at that eyes filled with guilt “I wish I said nothing…” she mumbled and Lexa forced her to meet her gaze with a finger under her chin.

The commander stared deeply into Marie’s grey eyes her own gaze unwavering “You do not have done anything to feel guilty for, Marie” she quickly reassured her charge, her tone firm leaving no room for doubt in her words.

Lexa could feel Titus’ dark eyes resting heavily on them and the man had ceased his constant strides through the room finally. “We will just need to keep it a secret for now” Lexa said to Marie squeezing her hand once again and caressing her cheek gently before she turned back to face Titus, still keeping the girl’s hand inside her own.

It was obvious by the crease in Titus’ brow that he had not expected to witness such a scene between the commander and Marie. The man could not deny that the girl had seemed completely honest in her worry for Lexa and he felt some appreciation for that, recognizing finally that the girl would not put Lexa in danger, at least not intentionally.

“I agree; the fewer people who know this, the better” the flamekeeper said his voice laced with importance.

Lexa nodded to signify her own agreement and Marie also nodded slightly. There was no question in Lexa’s mind that Marie would keep this secret save, so far the girl had been very reasonable for her age and the depth of her loyalty for herself and her general still surprised her slightly.

It spoke volumes that Titus put the journal back onto the table without being asked to. A slight pleased glint appeared in Lexa’s eyes, it seemed Titus was finally starting to if not warm to Marie on a personal level her former teacher had at least started to appreciate the girl’s obvious connection to her.

“So Skykru might possess delicate information about the first commander” Titus mused after putting the book down and Lexa could almost see the gears turning in her former teacher’s mind. His voice was gave as he added “That certainly puts a new aspect to them possibly entering the coalition”.

Lexa nodded, it also posed another reason for her not wanting to wipe out Skykru and all potential knowledge they might be having. She would have liked to ask Clarke what the blonde leader might know about Polaris, but as the other young woman was not in the capitol anymore it was not an option. A thought rose in her mind “Interrogate the Skykru prisoner, he might have additional information”.

Titus raised a brow minutely but nodded his acceptance and when Lexa did not offer any more words he nodded once more and strode from the room, probably to head into the dungeons immediately and carry out her orders.

Marie yawned wholeheartedly once the doors fell shut behind him and Lexa smiled gently down at the girl pushing her shoulder more firmly into the pillows “Rest, Marie” she said letting go of the girl’s hand after a final squeeze.

Marie settled herself comfortably on the bed turning onto her side and Risha scrambled from the foot of the bed sliding between the girl’s arms lying her snout on top of one of her arms. A smile played over Lexa’s features at the undeniably cute sight when Marie slightly tightened her arms around the cub.

Lexa stepped outside onto the balcony welcoming the icy wind against her face, the weather reflecting the turmoil in her mind. So much could be depending on Skykru right now and she did not have confidence they would actually decide to join the coalition. In her mind it was the only reasonable decision for them to make but that did not mean much when they were involved. Lexa stepped closer to the railing embracing the cold stone with her fingers looking down over the capitol laid out far beneath her.

Her breathing was calm although her thoughts were anything but, once again they stood on the brink of war. She had hoped to finally have peace amongst the clans, but she doubted that Skykru would be the last to cause trouble, Nia bugging at the back of her mind constantly like a wound left the fester for too long.

She was caught up in her thoughts and almost startled when Anya finally joined her. The general looked disgruntled, her braids in disarray, and sweat coating her brow together with an undefined mixture of dirt and blood. The older woman easily picked up on Lexa’s inner turmoil and waited for her to tell her what was bothering her in patient silence.

Lexa quickly filed Anya in to what Marie had discovered and watched the same worry settle on the hard features of her general. Anya actually for once had to agree with Titus, this knowledge was better kept from the clans.

“How is the unit coming along?” Lexa questioned when they finally stepped back into her quarters. A quick glance to the bed showed Marie in the same position she had left her in, eyes still closed and face relaxed in slumber.

“Rather well” Anya commented after she had strode into the bathroom retrieving a basin with water and some rags to clean off. Even though some of them still clearly suffered from what had been done to them in the Mountain, they fought viciously. Anya had been relieved to find most of them highly trained warriors already. She had been surprised to spot an Ice Nation warrior among them, the woman lacked the scars identifying her clan, clearly conveying her to be an assassin. They would need more training to really start to function as one unit but Anya had found enough potential among them to be confident in her abilities to make one unit out of them with a little bit of time.

 

Chapter 114

The rest of the day passed without any further incidents but that did not serve to put Lexa’s mind at ease. The commander felt antsy and unsettled unable to actually do anything at the moment which would once again settle the clans but being condemned to wait for Skykru to make their move. She hated such situations with a deep passion and her patience was once again put to a harsh test.

Her body felt as restless as her mind and Lexa would have preferred to leave the tower and seek out the training pits to exhaust her body in the hopes that her mind would tire as well. But another snow storm had started and the wind whipped loudly around the tower, so that Lexa had to concede that going outside was not a really well thought through idea at the moment.

Anya on the other hand already was rather tired out from the training session she had just held. As she had wanted to assess the skills of all the potential warriors to build the commander’s personal unit, she had needed to face all of them one after another and her muscles still burnt from the exhaustion. But the older woman had still picked up on Lexa’s eyes restlessly scanning the rooms, her lean frame tense, muscles twitching in anticipation of an attack, which would not happen for another few days at least. The general recognized Lexa’s behaviour as how she had acted while forming the coalition. It was obvious how worried the commander internally was that all her sacrifices might be in vain should the coalition fracture again.

The general tucked the furs in around Marie’s peacefully sleeping form, Risha opening her eyes immediately shortly glancing at the woman before settling down again. When she stood straight again her back cracked rather loudly the bones of her spine aligning themselves again.

Lexa huffed in annoyance at her inability to calm her mind at the moment letting herself slide down to sit cross-legged her back resting slightly against the carved wooden frame of the bed.

Anya watched her former second for a few moments calming down her breaths, her face slackening slightly and her jaw finally unclenching when Lexa succeeded to reign in her racing thoughts slipping into a meditative trance like state. Fully aware that Lexa could remain in this state for hours at a time Anya unlaced her boots and loosened her own disarrayed braids and quickly wiped down her body cleaning away the dirt and blood left behind from training. She grimaced slightly when she cleaned out a shallow gash at her side left behind by the sword of the Ice Nation assassin.

Dressing again in cleaner clothes Anya left her armour on a table, she would need to check it tomorrow to see if it needed any repairs. Although Anya would not have admitted it out loud but she still felt a residual exhaustion deep in her bones left behind after the Mountain and was rather grateful to be able to slide under the furs next to Marie. She hoped the cold season would afford her enough time to fully restore her strength, it annoyed her not to be at her best.

Marie woke up to a certain degree when Anya joined her in the huge bed feeling the mattress dip beside her under the other woman’s weight. For the blink of an eye panic flashed through Marie’s sleep addled mind until she recognized the smell of the woods she associated with Anya in her mind turning around slightly to snuggle up to her. The general instantly put an arm around their charge settling her comfortably pressed against her side and felt sleep tug at her mind only short moments later. Absently minded Anya internally wondered since when she had begun to feel reassurance from the girl’s frame pressed against her, making her sink into sleep easier.

It was many hours later when Lexa finally stood from the spot on the floor in front of the bed, her mind finally calmed again and tired, her eyes slightly burning from lack of sleep. Darkness had long fallen in her chambers save for the few candles which remained burning and the fire blazing in the fire pit casting part of the huge room in dancing shadows. Although the fire had obviously been stocked some time ago while Lexa was still mediating the temperature had dropped around her and her body felt chilled and she was oddly grateful to be able to slip into a bed not cold but already warmed.

Directly after Costia’s head had been delivered to her bedside Lexa had been in the constant company of Anya. The general had stayed beside her for days until she had heeded Titus’ words and sent her away. Almost welcoming the loneliness and coldness of her chambers, once she had finished her duties for the days she would slip into her chambers and not see another soul until the next morning.

But since Marie had literally fallen into their lives everything had changed drastically and Lexa felt slightly afraid of how quickly both she and Anya had let the girl from the stars into their hearts and Marie was now irrevocably bound to them.

In the dim light of the candles around them Lexa could barely make out Anya’s strong features but she could see Marie’s small form pressed against the general’s larger body and arm slung around her chest. A smile ghosted over her lips as she laid down beside both of them and she felt the heaviness settle over her mind and body alike as she drifted off into sleep.

Sometime later Lexa was awoken when Marie shifted over in her sleep and the girl seemed to instinctively scoot over to her. Lexa could hear Anya shifting next to them turning her back to Marie. Only a short moment passed until Lexa felt the girl’s arm sliding over her own body as she cuddled up to her and Lexa closed her eyes again.

When Marie woke up the next morning both Anya and Lexa were already up and quietly talking at a table obviously already eating breakfast. The wind was still howling loudly around the tower indicating that the storm yet had to calm again. Risha sat between Anya and Lexa on the rug covered ground icy blue eyes alternating between them whenever one of the women took a piece of food obviously hoping that one of them would give her something of their breakfast. Marie stretched leisurely under the furs and noted happily how much easier it was to breathe this morning, her lugs felt finally clearer again and her body had stopped aching all over.

“There is breakfast and tea beside you” Anya suddenly addressed Marie without turning to her making their charge startle in surprise.

“How had you known I am awake?” Marie asked feeling her heart beat strongly against her ribcage startled like that. She had been sure she had not made any noise and neither Anya nor Lexa sat facing her.

Anya looked over to Marie turning slightly to face the girl an expression on her face that clearly showed what she thought of the question without giving an actual answer. Marie ducked her head slightly under the light glare and grabbed the cup of tea which was still steaming, gently blowing on the surface a few times before she took a careful sip. It was obvious Lexa had made the tea, she added a good amount more of the honey into the bitter brew than Anya thought necessary to make it drinkable.

“How are you feeling?” Lexa asked voice kind and a soft shine to her green eyes making Marie look up again.

 “Better” Marie reassured quickly a slight smile on her lips, as she picked up the plate with breakfast immediately spotting the bright cheese she had already tasted and happily munching on the piece still enjoying the flavour.

Anya balanced her own plate of food on her lap and when she had turned over to face Marie Risha now promptly stood on her hind legs paws trying to reach up to the woman’s plate. The girl started to giggle softly under her breath when Risha actually managed to snatch a piece of meat from the plate while Anya was still facing Marie.

The general turned back eyes narrowing and glaring down at the small animal slugging down the piece of meat with one bite. Risha stood back up in her hind legs muzzle barely at the height of Anya’s knees and the general moved a foot slightly to shoo the cub away. But the wolf only placed its paws on Anya’s leg carefully now standing up on its rear legs. Anya shook her head vehemently and pushed the animal back down forcing the wolf to lie down on the floor with a glare.

Marie was still giggling slightly until Anya turned her glare back to her and the girl promptly chocked on a piece of bread coughing forcibly.

Lexa had an amused smirk tugging at her lips but when Risha tried to sit up and beg again for some more food the commander firmly pushed the animal back down.

When Marie was still coughing a few moments later trying to get her airway clear again in vain Anya placed her plate back on the table and strode over to their charge carefully clapping the girl on her back to help clear her airway. She had originally just assumed the girl had tried to conceal her giggle but she had obviously truly chocked on something.

A messenger knocked on the door carrying a scroll from TonDC. Lexa had been told that Octavia and Lincoln were planning to bond soon and the commander had offered to hold the ceremony in Polis together with a feast. She would normally not be involved in such a simple matter but it was clear to her that such an event could be used to show the clans that there indeed were Skykru who were willing to adapt to the way of live on the ground. There was a huge significance to the first pair of them to merge their two people to form one. While Marie had officially been introduced as a part of Trikru Octavia had not. Indra had officially taken her as her second but there had never been a ceremony so overall Octavia was still more Skykru than Trikru. Should a war truly break out between Skykru and the clans it would be better for Octavia if her place beside Lincoln and in extension Indra was sealed.

Marie’s pale face was flushed red from exertion when she finally could breathe again and she grimaced in pain at the burning feeling in her lungs, biting her lips against the tears that had sprung into her grey eyes.

Lexa quickly skimmed over the short message clearly written in Indra’s scrawl. The chief of TonDC had left their village with a small delegation a day ago and they were on their way to the capitol. The commander hoped they would arrive here safely with the weather this extreme the travels were risky at best.

She stood and accompanied the messenger out of her chambers. The man have ridden hard through the night exhaustion clear on his young face. She quickly organized with one of the guard to have the messenger accommodated in the tower until the weather cleared, his horse would be cared for in the stables.

“I hate being sick” Marie whined to Anya just as Lexa returned into the room. The general looked down at their charge with thinned lips her opinion clear in her brown strict eyes without any need for actual words.

“You will get better” Lexa reassured before Anya could truly make a snide comment. They both agreed on the fact that it was the girl’s own fault that she was sick but reminding her of that at every turn would surely not help improve her faster, but only dampen her mood.

Anya stepped back from the bed quickly donning on her armour. She had scheduled another training session with the commander’s private unit for the morning. She was not looking forward to heeding out in this weather but she supposed it was better than sitting still the whole day.

Marie watched the older woman leave mutely while Lexa searched for something on a table shuffling papers around. Lexa had almost another hour until she was expected in the throne room holding an open meeting again.

She gathered a few empty sheets of paper and a specific book, a feather and ink, and carried the items over to the bed handing over first the book. Marie accepted the book immediately opening it and looking down at the page with a frown. The sites were filled with variations of the alphabet she was used to and able to read and what looked like random scribbles and swirls and scratches.

“You have grown almost fluent in Trigedasleng but only in spoken word” Lexa explained to their charge pointing to what Marie thought might have been a series of word scratches “Now you need to learn how to write in our way as well”.

Learning to read and write in Trigedasleng proved to be much harder than learning to speak the language. While speaking had felt sort of instinctual and by listening to Anya and Lexa converse Marie had caught up rather quickly to the language. Although her pronunciation was still slightly off, her tongue unused to forming such harsh vocals, she managed to understand conversations now without much problems.

Marie’s head hurt slightly when Lexa stopped her lesson an hour later. The letters were blurring together in front of her eyes and she was glad that they would stop now. Lexa had been patient with their charge, it was obvious the girl had problems to focus and concentrate on the task. She knew that learning to write their language was not easy, but with enough practise and time Marie would master the skill sooner or later.

With Anya still outside of the tower occupied with the training and Lexa leaving to her meeting, the commander asked Gustus to stay behind with Marie, not wanting to leave the girl behind unsupervised for the chance that her fever would strike again.

Marie had seen the burly guard the last time when Anya had brought her back to Polis and she smiled softly at Gustus when he entered the commander’s chambers. Lexa quickly briefed the man on how to prepare the tea for Marie expecting that it might still take Anya some time to return and her meetings would often stretch out over hours as well. Ryder would accompany her to the meeting and normally there was no need for an actual personal guard there.

She had just had another cup of the tea and could already feel the effects taking hold of her body, her eyes drooping shut slowly.

When she woke up some time later Gustus sat on one of the couches bend over a book on the low table in front of him. Marie coughed a few silent moments later calling Gustus’ attention and the man stood and came over to her.

The girl regarded Gustus silently for a moment, the burly man looked exhausted and his brown eyes seemed dimmed. But he must have seen the compassion shimmering in her own grey eyes and his lips curved in a soft smile for a moment when he sat down next to the bed.

Marie gnawed at her lips a few moments, vividly remembering Sierra and could not shake a thought from her mind “Do you have other children?”

“Not anymore” Gustus said voice hinted with melancholy.

Marie’s face pulled in a frown guilt blooming in her chest at obviously bringing back what must be painful memories, but still she could not help but wonder what might have happened. The curiosity must have shown on her face.

Gustus took a deep breath “We had a boy, before Sierra” the man explained voice kind and a faraway look on his face “Rando was training as a second under Indra. He was excelling in training, he would have been able to take on a second on his own a winter or two later…”

Marie was aware that Rando must have died probably years ago but the pain in Gustus’ voice seemed raw and fresh. She wondered internally how the people left behind on earth had managed to survive this long and still handle all the death around them. On the Ark people mostly either died of old age, were floated or a few rare cases died suddenly after an accident or sudden disease. So hearing that someone she had known had died, had always shocked her. She had still not understood what death meant truly, only that the person would not return.

“…he was on a patrol near the Mountain when they were attacked by reapers” Gustus pulled her from her thoughts with his words and Marie could not contain a shudder at the mention of the Mountain. She could vividly remember the cages where they had kept grounders in.

“I am sorry” the girl said empathically grey eyes honest and full of compassion when she started to cough again.

Gustus squeezed her shoulder in silent acknowledgment and stood to make her a new tea. Marie silently wondered how old Rando had been and what he could have looked like.

The man was kind enough to add a generous amount of honey to the tea for her before he handed Marie the cup. A smile pulled at his lips as he said “You will need to learn how to gather that, if you continue to devour it like that” there was the hint of a tease in his voice.

“Gather it?” Marie questioned with a frown. She had no idea where the sweet tasting viscous amber liquid actually came from.

Gustus snorted “Bees produce it in their hives. Anya could tell you a lot about them” there was a twinkle to his dark eyes now as if he remembered something.

Marie tilted her head mutely asking for explanation.

“All right” Gustus conceded at the puppy-dog eyes from the young girl “Anya has made an intimate acquaintance with bees many summers ago…”

The girl laughed out loud freely eyes twinkling happily when Gustus retold her how Anya had tried to gather honey on her own without any precautions and the angry bees had stung her until she had sought shelter in the cold stream shrieking shrilly on her way there. Marie could not help but wonder how Anya might have looked like as a child and although the woman was the very epitope of austereness now, she guessed that even Anya must have been freer as a child.

“Have you been friends as children?” Marie asked curiosity burning in her grey eyes and voice eager.

Gusts said nonchalantly “We have trained alongside each other for years”.

“That we have” Anya suddenly said arms crossed over her chest and leaning against the wall next to the door making Marie jump slightly. The girl had not noticed the woman returning at all and wondered how long she had listened to them. The general did not seem that pleased when she stared down at Gustus, eyes hard but the burly man seemed unfazed by her glare. He nodded to both of them efficiently dismissing himself from the room.

 

 

Chapter 115

The rest of the day and the complete next day passed over quickly. The snow storm had finally moved away from the capitol but now the streets were covered with a deep layer of snow that needed to be shovelled off the streets so that the vendors would be able to open up their stalls again.

Marie had improved even more. The girl was still coughing a lot but her breathing had finally lost the rattling quality to it which was a huge relieve to both Lexa and Anya likewise. Her temperature had stayed completely normal and both women had agreed that keeping the girl in bed for another few days was probably not needed.

There had been no word yet neither from Indra nor from Clarke and thus Skykru and the lack of news made Lexa’s skin crawl. She knew that if Skykru had decided to leave, movements in their camp would have surely been seen and by now reported to her by one of her many scouts surrounding their settlement. So with every passing hour without any notice it looked more and more likely that they were facing another war. Lexa could not stop her mind from wondering what Clarke would chose to do in this case; die with her people fighting in a war they were bound to lose or try to convince as many of her people as possible to seek shelter in Polis?

The commander was almost relieved that tomorrow at dawn Charles Pike would draw his last breath. If Skykru had not sent word by then their choice would be clear without further notification and the clans would join forces against them either directly or when the snow finally melted with the next season.

Marie woke after Lexa and Anya had both long left their bed and were lowly speaking with each other voices too soft for Marie to catch any words.

Marie was positively surprised when Anya asked her to stand up from the bed to eat her breakfast together with the commander and the general who were sitting on the couches in the commander’s chambers. Her legs still felt weirdly weak and a slight ache remained in her whole body but she guessed both would get normal again after a few days.

The sun seemed to have just risen and Lexa’s hair was down, falling down her back in damp waves, obviously freshly washed and not yet organized into intricate braids. It took Marie a few moment on unsure feet to cross the distance from the bed to the couches and for a moment she felt almost woozy and was glad to sit down next to Anya. The general had watched her steps with hawk like eyes ready to jump up and help their charge the moment she would falter in her footing.

Titus was allowed into the chambers a few moments later to make a report about his training with the Ice Nation nightblood over the past two days. It was obvious by his annoyed tone of voice and the clench in his jaw that the bald man and the nightblood did not get along this well at the moment. Marie internally wondered if the source of the man’s irritation stemmed from the fact that he actually seemed to not have been able to find a true reason to complain to Lexa about Ontari. The girl mused internally if the flamekeeper was even capable of smiling or laughing, she had thus far only seen his austere face in a frown and lips pressed into a displeased line.

The commander listened to his report patiently noting that Ontari seemed to have made at least a slight effort in their lessons and hoping that there was still a chance for the girl. She dismissed the flamekeeper once it was clear that her former mentor was just searching for a reason to rant on.

Just after the flamekeeper had left obviously still in a rather bad mood, another series of urgent knockings sounded through the commander’s chambers.

Lexa bid the guards to allow entry to her rooms and Indra herself strode inside closely followed by Octavia. Both of them looked exhausted, snow and grime clinging to their clothing a sure sign to their hard and fast travels.

The commander straightened herself in her seat abandoning her breakfast altogether, the tight press of Indra’s jaw enough indication that whatever word she brought was important and no good news.

Octavia it seemed had blended further into their culture. Her dark haired styled in a way typical for Trikru and the swirls of a tattoo peeked through above the collar of her heavy coat. Marie noted how she seemed to stand taller and prouder as well and judging from the tight pants she was wearing the older girl had toughened up and gained muscle.

“A group of Skykru is on their way to the capitol, Heda” Indra addressed her urgency in her tone and wild fury in her dark eyes “Intent on breaking out Charles Pike”.

Lexa’s green eyes slotted to angry slits while Anya snorted slightly shaking her head. How could they even think to get into the best guarded structure in Polis?

Octavia’s dark eyes flashed with conflicted emotions as she added “My brother is part of the group. They are all armed with guns”.

The commander easily picked up on the anger reflected in the younger girl’s face mixed with obvious worry for her brother. Octavia must know that there was nothing she could do to save Bellamy if they were discovered trying to get into the capitol heavily armed.

She ground her teeth together in silent anger, it seemed Skykru really wished to force her hand. She had given them every chance she could for a peaceful solution but if they wanted violence instead, they would get what they asked for.

Lexa shortly caught Anya’s eyes “Have the guards increased around the tunnels. I want them to catch them as unharmed as possible”.  The commander looked back up at Indra “How far were they behind you?”

The dark skinned chief seemed to calculate internally before she said “Not much, maybe a candle mark, two at most”.

Anya immediately stood from her place to organize the warriors which would intercept the Skykru rebels. Marie watched the woman leave the room with quick strides and an angry snarl on her face, worry blooming in her own chest. They did not know how many armed soldiers from Skykru were on their way but as they carried guns many more warriors would be needed to overpower them. The possibility that more warriors would be dying looming as a threat in her mind, selfishly Marie hoped that Anya would not stay in the tunnels and return to them immediately.

“Get dressed” Lexa ordered to Marie and told Indra and Octavia to wait for her in the throne room. She strode behind them asking a guard to quickly summon Alira to do her hair for her.

Marie had stood up from the couch and now stood in the middle of the room unsure what to do. She actually had no idea where her other clothes were and at the moment she was dressed in a huge shirt reaching down to her knees. She was tugging at the shirt self-consciously while Lexa herself quickly dressed in the full commander regalia.

The woman picked up on Marie just standing there a few moments later and pointed to a wooden chest “Your clothes are in there”.

Marie had not noticed the wooden chest and internally wondered if it was a new addition. In reality it was, Lexa had made Anya move a few of her and Marie’s things into the commander’s quarters for now; she still thought it unrealistic to hope that Marie would just need a few days for her nightmares to dwindle down already resigned to the fact that it might take weeks or rather month for her to improve. Going back and forth between the two quarters was impractical for a longer time span so it had been a reasonable decision.

Marie quickly searched through the things inside the chest assembling an outfit she already had worn before and was thus familiar with. She did not recognize all of the clothes the chest contained and a few were definitely much too big for her and she guesses that they probably belonged to Anya.

Lexa had sat down in front of a mirror and had a fine brush in hand already applying the black pigment around her eyes to form her typical war paint.

A moment later Alira entered the commander’s chambers and immediately got to work with Lexa’s hair. The older handmaiden had such practise in plaiting Lexa’s brown locks into the braids that it did not take her long at all.

“Do her hair as well” Lexa ordered when Alira stepped back still occupied with complementing her war paint just shortly glancing up at the older woman.

Alira motioned for Marie to sit down and waved the blonde hair into the design she had worn when Ontari abducted her including the red strips of cloths again. While Alira was still occupied with the girl’s hair Lexa crouched down in front of Marie’s facing now applying the pigment to the girl’s pale skin. Accentuated by the black paint the girl’s gentle grey eyes seemed to turn into hard polished silver orbs.

“Are we at war now?” the girl’s soft wavering voice and the innocence in her eyes contrasted starkly with the image her outer appearance now conveyed.

Lexa stopped in her strokes the brush hovering in front of Marie’s face and she purposefully gentled her own hard green eyes, her anger was not directed against their charge after all, so she kept her tone kind as well “We may not be yet, but remember what I said about appearances”.

The girl nodded immediately her expression turning solemn and she seemed to straighten herself sitting up taller. Lexa had put the finishing touches to the girl’s war paint and stood up looking down at her with a fleeting smile before she schooled her own expression again.

Lexa lastly buckled the large shoulder pauldron to her body and fastened the red sash under it completing her outfit. “Come” the commander ordered to Marie and the girl followed her with hurried steps to keep up with her own fast strides.

Gustus and Ryder who had stood guard at the double doors to the commander’s chambers fell into step slightly in front of her. The girl’s breathing was hard and laboured when they stepped into the elevator and Lexa kept watch of their charge Clarke’s words ringing loudly in her ears to keep Marie in bed for a few more days. She left the elevator way slower so that Marie did not have to exert herself as much to keep up with them.

The atmosphere in the throne room was tense as they waited. Lexa had been adamant that Marie sat down on a chair for now which had been positioned next to the throne. Anya had not returned to them yet so Lexa concluded that the general had directly stayed with the warriors to wait for the Skykru group’s arrival. The worry shimmering in Marie’s grey eyes sign enough that the girl had come to the same conclusion.

Octavia seemed to have trouble standing still at the moment and constantly fidgeted in place. The commander was aware how hard it must have been for the younger girl to warn Indra and by thus possibly condemn her own brother to death.

Indra had her jaw clenched and had kept a hand on the pommel of her sword dangling at her hip ready to fight at a moment’s notice. Her brown eyes were hard and fury burned in them.

Marie was silently thankful that Lexa had insisted that she sat down, she felt out of breath and her chest had started to hurt again from the exertion of trying to keep up. She hated waiting with a passion and the minutes seemed to tic by awfully slowly, no one spoke a word and everyone seemed to strain their hearing for the tell-tale signs of a struggle in the corridors.

Marie had expected to feel relieve when suddenly there were sounds coming from the corridors instead she felt her whole body tense in anticipation and her breathing became laborious once again.

Lexa seemed to straighten on her throne as well while her expression remained carved out of stone the clench in her jaw relied her calmness. Gustus and Ryder stood protectively flanking the throne on both sides.

The huge doors to the throne room were pushed open a moment later but the intensity of the noise from the halls had already announced the arrival of the group.

The group was larger than Lexa had anticipated and it was easy to identify the ten members of Skykru who had tried to get into the dungeons of the tower. They were all more or less battered and already heavily restrained, some even gagged.

Anya was dragging Bellamy along, the commander recognized the young man from the preparations against the Mountain. Her brown eyes blazed with nearly untamed fury, her features contorted into a vicious mask. “Five wounded guards, Heda” the general said through clenched teeth voice cutting as she added “Two fallen”.

Lexa ground her teeth together her green eyes flashing dangerously almost gleaming while they were accentuated by the black war paint giving her an almost feral image. Two more lives claimed by the invaders of the Sky, how many more had to fall at their hands?

“I have sent aid to you to help you through the cold season” Lexa started outwardly calm “And this is the gratitude Skykru shows” there was an almost bitter edge to her tone. She was still steadfast in her opinion that sharing their culture with Skykru would be beneficial for the clans in the long run, but the more Skykru pushed the less likely this would ever come to pass.

The eyes of the Skykru that met her gaze were all angry and distrustful, Bellamy’s dark eyes were fixed on Octavia. He seemed angry to see his sister standing beside Indra and Lexa concluded that Octavia must have warned the village chief, in a way even betraying her brother. If not for the piece of cloths shoved into the young man’s mouth he would have probably hurled some words at his sister standing next to Indra, swallowing forcefully every few seconds and worrying her bottom lip between her teeth. The ones who did not look at her were all pale and it probably dawned on them what they had actually done and what the likely consequence would be.

“Which guards have fallen and who has shot them?” the commander demanded to know. Anya forced Bellamy to his knees with a swift kick to the backside of his knees as the man had started to struggle against her hold.

Two others were forced down onto their knees. A man probably around the same age as Lexa herself was and a woman she recognized and thought was called Hannah Green, these two were the ones responsible directly for a death of one of her warriors. The commander was aware that she did not have any other choice than to execute these two alongside Charles Pike at dawn.

Anya told her the names of the two guards which had already died and the five who had been wounded in the assault. Lexa ground her teeth together angrily. The first guard who had died was a boy still, barely fifteen summers old and had just started his duty at the tower a few moons ago. The second who had been lethally wounded had been a warrior from TonDC. Lexa knew that he left behind two children and his wife was currently awaiting the third child.

Marie did not know any of the names Anya was enumerating but she thought it did not matter if she knew them or not. Every life forcefully taken was one too many.

Lexa breathed out slowly through her nose trying to reign in her temper trying to flare up. Her hands itched with the longing to simply take her swords and end all of those fools where they stood.

“It seems Skykru does not know how to formally declare a war” she drawled almost in a bored tone. Anya’s brown eyes flashed catching on to what her former second wanted to say immediately.

The commander levelled all of them with a glare, her patience and the heavy silence settling over them more cutting than a dagger to their flesh. Beads of sweat were gathering on Bellamy’s brows in anticipation.

“I grant Skykru the right to travel through Kongeda lands and you use it to invade our sacred capitol” Lexa continued her unyielding gaze still travelling over all of them “A place of peace, murdering two guards on their duty in cold blood. These cannot stand ….”

Sudden noises of a struggle outside of the throne room made the commander pause in her speech, straining her hearing for what was going on. It took her only a moment to recognize Clarke’s voice arguing with the guards still posted in front of the doors. The blonde leader loudly demanded entry into the throne room.

“Let her pass” Lexa called loud enough for the guards outside of the door to hear and the doors were promptly pulled open.

Clarke rushed inside in a flurry, her pale face flushed from the cold and she remained rooted on the spot when she noticed that she had arrived too late. The group of her people had already been captured and brought in front of the commander to await her judgment. The woman’s shoulders dropped at the feelings of her failure when she spotted Bellamy and Jasper being part of the group.

Lexa could watch the younger woman breathe deeply and determination returned into her blue eyes as she met her gaze, her voice was strong and unwavering as she asked “Can I talk to you for a moment, privately?”

The commander raised a dubious brow at the other leader but inclined her head, following an instinctual feeling, standing from her throne in one swift movement and motioned to the balcony. Clarke eagerly nodded and followed Lexa over onto the balcony.

While Lexa could see Clarke shivering when the cold wind hit them, she herself welcomed the fresh breeze on her face, sharpening her senses. Anya snorted under her breath, if Clarke had been aware that almost half of these short talks ended with the other participant screaming as they plummeted from the tower to their certain death, the general knew the blonde girl would not have been these eagerly to step foot on the balcony. Marie’s grey eyes were hefted onto Anya, worry at what was happening clear in them.

Lexa turned back to face Clarke simply waiting for the other woman to speak. When Clarke seemed lost for her words almost shrinking under her unyielding stare and it became obvious that the other leader was still trying to come up with something Lexa spoke up, the hint of a tease glinting in her eyes “Have you come to make me an offer again, Clarke of the Sky people?”

 

 

Chapter 116

Clarke straightened her shoulders swallowing harshly before she said “Lexa, please …”

The commander’s temper flared briefly and her green eyes danced with fury “What “please”? You want to ask me again to be merciful?!”

She could see Clarke swallowing again and the other leader took a small step back efficiently bringing more distance between them “I have tried to reach Polis before them” she said voice desperate “They have knocked out other guards to get to the weapons” her eyes showed her own frustration with the group. She had worked so hard the last days to convince her people that joining the coalition was the only sensible choice for them and had finally had the agreement of the council when the next shift of guard had reported the missing guns.

Lexa clenched her jaw together angrily. This only confirmed her opinion how lacking the control of the Skykru council was over their population. It also highlighted that she could not allow Skykru to keep even a single of their guns or such mishaps would keep on repeating.

“It seems that Octavia was able to warn you, before something could happen” Clarke continued voice hopeful.

Lexa’s green eyes blazed “But something did happen, Clarke” she said voice clipped and angry “Two more of my guards have been killed, five more injured. More blood has been spilled and this will not stand unpunished!”

Shock and resignation flickered through Clarke’s expressive blue eyes. It was obvious the other woman had hoped that no one had been hurt again.

“Marching on our beloved capitol is high treason, Clarke” Lexa clarified voice and eyes hard “Treason punishable by death”.

The commander could see Clarke swallowing forcefully again before she continued not giving the other woman a chance to speak up “It lets me question my offer for your people to join the coalition” her voice was deathly serious and for a moment the only sound came from the wind wiping around their faces.

Clarke had paled considerably before she boldly said “Skykru will leave the punishment to you, commander”.

It did not go unnoticed how the blonde had switched back to her formal title and the pain she felt reflected strongly on her face.

“What have your people decided?” Lexa asked voice slightly calmer again. She doubted that the Skykru council would be pleased to lose ten people to her judgment.

“We will join under your banner, commander” Clarke said voice strong and eyes determined.

Lexa nodded feeling a slight weight lift from her shoulders. They would need to talk about specific requirements at a later point.

When Lexa turned around to return into the throne room Clarke suddenly grabbed one of her arms. Lexa remained standing frozen on the spot and turned back to slightly glare at the blonde leader and Clarke removed her hand quickly a slight blush colouring her cheeks.

“Are you going to execute all of them?” Clarke asked worry and pain battling in her blue eyes.

Lexa met her conflicted gaze with calm green eyes. She remembered that Clarke and Bellamy seemed to share a rather strong bond and it did not surprise her in the slightest that she would try to plead for his life. Two others in the group were close enough to Clarke’s age that they could have been part of the Skykru group sent to earth first.

“The two who have shot my guards will die alongside Charles Pike at dawn” Lexa said after a moment “The others still committed treason”.

“But is there nothing else but an execution?” Clarke pleaded eyes desperate.

Lexa clenched her jaw feeling a flash of empathy for the blonde but she knew that she needed to show strength to Skykru and the other clans or she would be the one to suffer the retribution later on. “Sparing their lives will weaken my own position, Clarke” Lexa said voice clipped again “There is nothing I can do”.

Clarke once again reached out halting Lexa’s steps back into the throne room and her voice wavered as she said “And if I kneel to you…?”

Lexa whirled around again facing the blonde and Clarke took a step back surprised by the fury in her green eyes.

“You said it would strengthen your position and help my people” Clarke clarified eyes still pleading with her mutely although there was a conflict raging in her blue eyes, clearly torn between saving her friends and submitting to the commander.

Lexa clenched her jaw, contemplating the offer in her mind. The other woman was right, having Wanheda kneel for her in front of the other clans would far outweigh her sparing the lives of the others of the group, they would still need to receive a public punishment, but one they may survive.

“I will kneel to you in front of the ambassadors” Clarke repeated “Wanheda submitting to the commander” her voice sounded almost bitter and it was obvious she would only do it to save her friends.

Lexa felt anger flare in her mind at the blonde leader. Her offer was sensible enough, but it still angered her how unwilling the blonde obviously still was to do something for her. It may be the right decision on a political level but it would surely separate them even further on a personal level.

Lexa finally nodded her face and voice completely void of any emotion “You may have your deal, Clarke of the Sky people. The other eight will be punished with a redemption rite”.

Clarke seemed to breathe deeper in relieve although the other woman surely could not know what such a rite contained. The commander nodded once to the other woman mutely before she returned to the throne room Clarke trailing behind her.

“Bring all of them into the dungeons to await their punishment” Lexa proclaimed with finality to her voice. She could see Octavia stiffening in anticipation.

The guards all immediately obeyed her command without any hesitation hauling the prisoners from Skykru behind them forcefully. Anya let another guard take over Bellamy and stayed inside the throne room as well stepping up behind Marie and placing a reassuring hand on her shoulder. The girl looked pale and slightly shaken.

“When can Skykru officially join the coalition?” Clarke asked after the doors fell shut again and the sounds of the guards escorting the prisoners faded from the halls.

“Can you communicate with your people without travelling to them?” Lexa asked sitting down on her throne again. She would want to get it over with as soon as possible.

Clarke nodded pulling a radio from a pocket inside of her coat.

“Contact them” Lexa ordered “We can finalize the conditions tomorrow after the executions”.

The blonde young woman nodded but hesitated a moment before she asked “Is the room I stayed in still available?”

The commander nodded mutely and Clarke left without another word exchanging a heavy gaze with Lexa before she turned. Lexa asked Octavia about her bonding quickly and the young woman assured her it would be an absolute honour if she could hold the ceremony in Polis, so she dismissed both Indra and Octavia who were bound to be tired from the hard travels to reach the capitol in time.

“They are still joining the coalition?” Anya asked slight confusion showing on her face once they were alone in the throne room with only Gustus and Ryder.

Marie had problems following the conversation around her, her head felt fuzzy and her eyes hurt.

Lexa sighed deeply and her displeasure was apparent in her tone “The great Wanheda will kneel in front of me”.

Anya raised a brow at that and she barely contained her snort of disbelieve. She of course knew that it would help Lexa showing that Wanheda did not possess more strength than the commander by having her submit publicly. But Anya also could picture how it would feel to Lexa knowing that Clarke would only bend her knees in front of her to save her people.

“Will they all be executed?” Marie asked voice small as she did so, eyes huge in her pale face.

Lexa shook her head “No, only the two who directly ended one of the guard’s lives will die alongside Pike.

Anya looked at the younger woman with a frown on her face mutely asking what was to happen with the others. All of them had been caught committing a heavy crime and even if Wanheda bowed in front of Lexa that would not be enough to appease the clans if the commander let the others return without consequences. The general’s confusion was mirrored on their charge’s face who had cocked her head slightly in silent question as well.

“They will undergo the rite of redemption” the commander answered both of their questions.

“What is that?” Marie immediately wanted to know head still tilted in thought. The girl tried to remember if she had heard of that already, but the phrase did not sound familiar to her at all.

“The rite of redemption is a form of punishment” Anya explained “It usually consists of a whipping. The number of lashes depends on the severity of the crime. The lashes have to be taken without any sound for the redemption to be accepted. Crying out symbolizes weakness and someone who cannot face the repercussions of their crimes and is without honour. If the culprit manages the lashing he has to survive one day without the aid of a healer, before the culprit is officially cleared of his sins. If the culprit fails the rite of redemption he is considered to be out of honour and is banned from the land of the Kongeda, not allowed to return to any clan.”

“So not all crimes are convicted with death?” Marie added another question.

Lexa shook her head “No, Marie, not all crimes do warrant a death penalty.”

When the girl started to cough violently again Lexa proclaimed that they would return to their quarters. They would only need Marie to be present at the executions again tomorrow morning and she wanted the girl to rest until then. It was obvious that the time out of bed had already put a strain on her weakened body. The girl’s skin looked paler already and a sheen of sweat had gathered on her forehead.

Anya walked immediately behind the girl with a hand on her shoulder keeping her steady as Marie’s step seemed to waver.

Marie felt internally relieved when they reached the commander’s quarters, the way had seemed awfully long to her. The girl did not disagree at all when Anya ordered her to shrug out of her outer clothes and return to the bed.

Lexa took the girl’s coat and stored it away and crouched down in front of her unlacing the girl’s boots for her while Anya prepared a tea for their charge.

After Marie had laid down under the furs again Lexa gently felt the girl’s temperature on her forehead but it felt only slightly elated.

“Marie” Lexa addressed her voice and eyes once again gentle “You need to drink the tea” she admonished the girl who was already in the process of falling asleep.

The commander gently shook the girl’s shoulder prompting a whiny sound from their charge’s mouth. She pulled the girl’s back up into a sitting position and stayed sitting beside Marie on the bed watching her drink the tea and gently jostling her again when her grey eyes closed. Once the cup was finally drained Lexa pushed Marie down again and the girl immediately let her eyes fall close and drifted off into an exhausted slumber.

“She will get stronger again” Anya said when Lexa came over from the bed to the couch.

Risha who had slept rolled together on the couch on which Lexa sat down perked up immediately. Her icy blue eyes glancing up at the commander. The cup shortly stretched out its limps and then crawled over to the woman tapping a soft paw against her thigh for attention.

A smile pulled at Lexa’s lips as she carded her fingers through Risha’s grey soft fur and the cub crawled into her lap making herself comfortable there.

Anya looked at the small animal critically shaking her head slightly at its antics.

The commander glanced over to Marie’s sleeping form for a moment, the girl awfully small hidden under a bunch of furs only some blonde hair peeking out “She has the whole cold season to recover her health” she commented.

The general nodded silence settling between them. Her brown eyes were hefted onto Lexa’s face and the clench to her jaw, still broadcasting the other woman’s obvious frustration. “About Clarke…” Anya started voice calm and watching Lexa’s face intently.

“Don’t” the commander almost hissed through clenched teeth. Her fingers paused momentarily as she let them glide through the cub’s soft fur, before she exhaled forcefully and resumed stroking the animal.

Anya nodded mutely knowing better than to push the young woman sitting across from her and instead let the subject drop “What are you going to demand from Skykru specifically?”

“They will need to destroy their guns, all of them” Lexa said in a voice that clearly showed she would not budge one bit on this condition.

Anya raised a questioning brow at her former second “And you truly think they will accept that?” She agreed with Lexa on a certain level that Skykru would forever be separated from them if they clung to their guns, as the distrust would never completely stop this way, but she doubted they would agree to this. But it would be a hard and abrupt transition for Skykru, she doubted they had yet adapted to their ways.

“They will better” Lexa answered voice and eyes hard and unyielding. It was clear she would not put this up for negotiation. Skykru would either accept or there would be war. “Had Octavia not warned Indra, this small group of armed rebels could have conquered the tower by surprise and the power of bullets alone” the commander’s voice was grave and her shoulders seemed to be slumped weighted down by the responsibility resting heavy on her small frame.

Anya nodded expression as grave. The only thing that had kept the Mountain Men slightly manageable was that they could not breathe their air. Their warriors would never be able to win against an army armed with guns. They would always need to trust Skykru not to suddenly launch a surprise attack against them.

They continued to speak about different conditions, Lexa listening to her former mentor’s opinions on the matters patiently. It was obvious Lexa had strengthened the sanctions against Skykru considerably and her patience for the soon to be thirteenth clan seemed to run extremely thin.

Marie woke up some time later again eyes slightly blood shot and forcefully coughing again. She saw Lexa and Anya sitting on the couches across from each other lowly discussing something. Judging from the serious expressions on both of their faces probably politics Marie mused internally.

The girl stood from the bed a fur still tightened around her body and padded over to them, mutely squeezing herself next to Anya on the small couch and cuddling up to the slightly surprised woman with a pitiful expression in her pale face.

Lexa watched the girl’s behaviour with a soft smile tugging at her lips while Anya seemed to supress a sigh and laid an arm around the girl’s form over the fur pulling her tighter against herself. They both watched how Marie closed her eyes again a moment later and fell asleep again in Anya’s warm embrace.

“If all of Skykru could be satisfied this easily” Lexa almost snorted under her breath still looking at their sleeping charge. She could not remember if she herself had ever been this clingy when sick, but she had rarely been sick at all as a child.

Anya unsuccessfully tried to contain a bark of dark laughter pulling a groan of protest from Marie’s lips at the movement jostling her comfortable position. “I doubt that would go over well” she retorted as she stroke over Marie’s blonde hair gently shushing the girl again quickly in the process.

They were still discussing what was to happen now when a knock resonated from the door, Clarke bidding entry into the commander’s chambers.

Lexa called out to let her in and Anya could watch her former second slip the mask of the commander over her features, face and eyes turning expressionless and calm.

The blonde woman strode into the chambers shoulders squared and head held high but Anya could easily spot the barely concealed shaking in her hands belying her calm façade.

“Have your people decided to revoke their word again?” the commander asked almost in a mocking tone green eyes gleaming dangerously.

“No” Clarke shook her head voice slightly shaking as well “Kane and the council will arrive at dawn, without guns”.

Anya internally had to admit that Skykru had either already learned or were not as hopelessly foolish as she had originally thought.

Lexa inclined her head mutely waiting for why Clarke had come here in the first place. They had already agreed that their delegation could arrive tomorrow and they could be initiated into the coalition after agreeing on their terms.

“The council wanted to know the specific terms beforehand” the blonde young leader said and it was obvious she did not feel well asking for this.

Lexa clenched her jaw already sensing that Skykru was on the one hand expecting her to strengthen the terms and on the other hand probably wanting to plan ahead on how to appease her and lessen the terms again. “They will hear them tomorrow” the commander said voice ringing with finality.

Clarke swallowed forcefully slightly squirming under Lexa’s unyielding intense stare, her voice was even apologizing as she added “I am truly sorry for what happened”.

Anya shortly glanced at Lexa, her resolve had obviously not been softened by the apology. But they had lost another two warriors to the blonde leader’s people and Lexa’s words rang loudly in her ears. The commander had been extremely generous in the gifts and help she had given Skykru to last through the cold season but they did not seem to appreciate that at all.

It looked like Clarke had wanted to say more, but without any outward reaction from Lexa she breathed out a heavy breath and dismissed herself again without another word.

“She will only kneel in front of me to save Bellamy and her people” Lexa commented voice tinted with a silent anger after Clarke had left and only pure frustration had made her voice the words at all, almost as if she needed to voice them before she screamed in frustration.

Anya raised a questioning brow at the younger woman, aware that the anger was probably more actual jealousy than anything else, but she mused internally if Lexa was aware of that as well or if her former second was still trying to fight the painfully obvious attraction and connection both leaders had with each other.

The general sighed as Lexa suddenly sprung to her feet, Risha looking up at the woman with accusing eyes. The commander went over to another table and started scribbling down something in her journal, the scratch of the feather against the pages sounding almost angry.

There was no question in her mind that Lexa had already opened her heart irrevocably to the blonde leader. There was no explanation for her anger if her heart was not involved. She wondered if Lexa was angrier with herself for actually allowing herself this weakness or angry at the blonde that her stubbornness seemed to pull them apart even further.

In all honesty Anya had feared Lexa would never find someone again that made her open her heart again. After Costia’s death she had recognized less and less of Lexa within the powerful commander, as the younger woman locked herself away behind iron walls of calmness and power.

But as her general she was also aware how bad the timing was and how badly the clans would conceive a love between both leaders. Anya tightened her arms slightly around Marie’s form, with the way the commander and Wanheda were reacting to each other it was entirely possible that they would never move out of this strange conflict of stubbornness and pride. She was not sure if she should hope that Clarke would leave Polis soon or stay, so that the both of them could sometime recognize what they might be to each other.

 

Chapter 117

Marie was shaken awake again later when the night already started to fall around the tower by Anya’s gentle hand on her shoulder. She had slept away peacefully for a few hours and Anya had patiently remained on the couch leafing through a book trying not to disturb their charge’s rest.

Alira had just brought a tray with dinner into the commander’s chambers and Lexa had stopped writing in her journal. She was calmer again, writing down her thoughts on paper sometimes helped her see a different perspective to them and allowed her to let them rest, knowing that she had a physical reminder of her thoughts.

Anya waited until Marie had scooted back out of their weird embrace and sat up against the backrest still keeping the fur wound around her body tightly. She handed a bowl containing a still steaming and strongly smelling broth and a piece of soft bread together with a wooden spoon over to the girl.

Lexa joined them a few moments later taking a bowl for herself and watched with a barely concealed smirk as Risha started to beg at Anya’s knees for food. The cub seemed to have more than a healthy appetite and she also seemed to grow slightly daily now. She estimated the cub would be fully grown when the snow melted again in spring.

“Do I have to be at the executions?” Marie asked after she had finished almost half of her broth already. Her grey eyes seemed extremely big in her pale face still accentuated by the war paint, which had become smudged in a few places.

Lexa looked up from her own dinner and regarded their charge for a moment. The girl had truly lost weight over the last days and looked smaller and frailer than ever, but as her second she was expected to be there and as the fever had not returned there was no sensible reason to not have her attend. “Yes” the commander answered voice kind “You will be expected to participate and place your cuts after me and Anya”.

Marie swallowed rather harshly but she nodded looking down into the bowl clasped in her hands. It was obvious the girl did not feel well with the prospect of being involved in more executions.

Neither Lexa nor Anya knew what to say to the child to ease her obviously troubled mind. Executions had been a normal occurrence for both of them, a simple fact of life they had grown up with. Marie also had grown up in an environment where death penalty was nothing extraordinary but it was still different if you were truly participating in the execution by placing a cut and drawing blood from the culprit.

Risha trying to actually climb up into Anya’s lap to get a hold of a piece of a bread diffused the slight tension in the room and pulled happy giggles from Marie’s lips. The general glared down at the impertinent wolf cub and firmly shoved the animal down on the ground keeping her there for a moment until the cub ceased its struggle and submitted.

The girl’s lips were still tilted into a smile when Anya looked at her with an expression that clearly conveyed that the general regarded it solely Marie’s fault that she now had to deal with the cub as well.

“When can I start to train again?” Marie asked after a few moments.

Anya furrowed her brow before she answered “When you are healthy again”.

“Mmh” Marie hummed nonchalantly obviously not satisfied with the answer and the time it took her to get better again.

Lexa smiled at their charge kindly knowing all too well how impatient you could get with yourself “You will get better in no time, Marie. But better rest now, when training is only slightly possible in the cold season, than remain sick for longer”.

The girl nodded as the argument made sense to her. She still had some of the bread left and did not feel like eating anymore so Marie dangled the piece of bread in front of Risha.

Anya thinned her lips obviously displeased with the girl feeding the cub while they still ate. It was no wonder the animal thought it normal to beg for food at the table. Lexa slightly shook her head signalling to the older woman to let the matter rest for now.

Lexa ordered Marie to go into the bathroom and wash the war paint from her face. She had seen that some of the black pigment had already been smudged onto a pillow and a fur and she knew that it was nearly impossible to wash out. When she had fallen asleep with her war paint on against Anya’s orders years ago still relatively fresh as a second, the woman had let her try to wash out the black pigment in a cold stream, so she knew from experience how hard it was to remove the strains again.

The girl obeyed immediately and returned with her pale face scrubbed clean again. The commander gave Marie the book again she had already started to practise the written form of Trigedasleng with and the girl spent some time trying to improve her skill. It was obvious she was rather impatient with it and that the task seemed taxing on her mind; it did not take the girl long to start to fall asleep.

Lexa did not think it necessary to chastise their charge although Anya seemed slightly annoyed by the girl’s lacking focus while practicing. “She will get better” Lexa reassured both of them again to which Anya only mutely rolled her eyes.

The night would be short for all of them. The executions and the rites of redemption would start long before the sun rose. She would end the lives of the Skykru men with the first rays of sunshine of the new day, so they would be required to leave her chambers extremely early.

Lexa had contemplated not sleeping at all before the executions would start but with the prospect of having to deal with the Skykru council after the executions and surely the ambassadors of the clans after that, she knew she would need all the rest she could get now for the upcoming day.

Anya had already laid down on the bed when Marie returned from the bathroom, having slipped from the bed shortly to relieve herself when Anya and Lexa started to get ready to settle for the night, and Lexa took her turn to wash off the war paint. The girl slipped under the furs beside Anya looking up at the older woman with her grey eyes and it was obvious from her expression that something was still troubling her mind.

Anya thought it would probably be still about the executions and tried to reassure the girl “You have already seen several executions, Marie, it won’t be any different now”.

For a short moment the girl looked confused before she slightly shook her head and a faint blush creeped up her pale cheeks, her voice was soft and unsure as she said “It is not that”.

Anya raised a questioning brow at their charge and waited for the child to speak her mind. She internally mused why the girl was suddenly shy about whatever was on her mind. From the corner of her eye she could see Lexa approaching the bed, face washed clean of the black mask of war paint and a black nightgown on her lean frame.

Marie surprised her by repeating the same mumbled “love you” from a night ago and instantly the girl scooted over and cuddled up to her. Anya could see her grey eyes peeking up at her shyly trying to gauge her reaction. Even though Anya had heard the girl say these very words already, she was still stunned slightly, now the girl was definitely conscious again about what she was saying. Anya’s mouth seemed to have gone as dry as the Dead Zone and her tongue felt foreign in her mouth, unable to form any actual words at the moment, she reassuringly tightened her arms around the girl’s frame, hoping that the gesture would be answer enough for now.

Lexa watched the scene with contrasting emotions. It was heart-warming to see the girl’s honest emotions so clearly written on her young face, the adoration she felt for the older woman absolutely clear in the deep trust between them. It was also slightly humorous to watch Anya falter like this, the usually so stoic woman disarmed so easily and completely by the child.

But she still could not help the slight flare of, if she dared name it, jealousy. She could not remember if she ever said to her general that she loved her in the innocent way Marie just had when she had still been the woman’s second. But she doubted she ever had, although she had of course also trusted and even adored her former mentor there had still always been a slight invisible barrier of respect between them. Lexa had as a child growing up under Anya’s tutelage seen the older woman as a sort of a family to her, having none other left, but still the connection had not been like this.

On the other hand she wondered if Marie truly held her in the same high regard she did with Anya. The commander was well aware that Marie and Anya had sort of instantly found a connection to each other and it had taken her much longer to find any connection with the young girl. Doubts made themselves known in her mind, reeling up their ugly heads, loudly telling her, that she was not even deserving of the same love as Anya was for several reasons. She had made the decision to abandon the girl at the Mountain and she was first and foremost the commander which would always mean that she needed to keep a certain distance to others. To be commander meant to be alone after all.

Anya watched the conflicting emotions flit over Lexa’s unusually expressive face with a frown. The way Lexa tightened her jaw and seemed to swallow harshly, lying down on the other side of the bed, keeping a definite gap between them did not sit well with her at all. The commander had turned her back on both of them immediately and Anya huffed under her breath aware that trying to talk to the younger woman now would not help.

Marie had already started to drift off, her body going slacker against Anya’s side and her breathing slowly evening out, so she was totally unaware of the effect her words had had on Lexa.

Lexa was the first to rise from the bed after a few hours and the commander felt as if she had not slept at all; no matter how hard she had tried she had failed to silence her thoughts.

Anya woke to the sound of Lexa starting to dress herself again in her commander regalia and when she herself slipped out from under the furs, she gently shook Marie awake as well. The girl grumbled unintelligibly clearly less than pleased to be woken at this hour and it took her a few minutes to blink her grey eyes open and stand up from the bed on wobbly legs.

Anya had thought about addressing Marie’s declaration to Lexa while the girl was in the bathroom but the other woman had already seemed firmly settled behind her impenetrable mask so that she had let the matter rest for now. There would surely still be time to talk with her later.

They got dressed in silence and after applying her own war paint Anya motioned for Marie to sit on a stool and carefully applied the black pigment around the girl’s eyes for her. The girl scrunched up her nose when the stroke of the fine brush tickled against her skin. “Hold still” Anya admonished their charge in a slightly clipped tone unwilling to have to start over with the design.

The way down to the base of the tower was silent as well. Gustus and Ryder fell into step in front of the commander and Lexa’s features were set in stone at the moment. Marie herself was uncharacteristically silent as well and her whole posture spoke about how unwell she felt with what was to happen now. Marie kept closely to Anya standing as close to the woman’s body as possible without outright touching her.

It was still pitch black outside but the place in front of the tower was already crowded with people. Marie silently mused if the whole city was already on their feet now to attend the public punishments. The air was icy cold around them but fortunately it was not snowing anymore.

The commander preceded them onto the wooden podium where Marie had already seen executions before, after she had nearly killed the woman accidentally. She instantly spotted Titus and the nightbloods together with a woman she did not know yet already standing on the podium. Ontari stood out starkly among the other nightbloods, the young woman stood separated from the others flanked by two guards on both sides. Chairs had been set up for every ambassador and the clans’ small delegations were also already waiting for the commander.

Lexa’s appearance seemed to be a sign for the guards at the base of the tower to retrieve the prisoners. Anya had explained to Marie that the rites of redemption would take place after the executions.

After a few moments three pairs of guards brought forth the three prisoners that were bound to die now. Pike was heavily struggling against the hold of the guards while the other two seemed to have resigned themselves to their fate.

By the reactions of the people standing around the podium it was clear that word had spread through the capitol about Charles Pike’s views, but the presence of the other two caused some puzzlement and muttering went through the onlookers.

“People of Polis” Lexa stood in the middle of the podium her green eyes almost blazing in their intensity accentuated by the war paint, her voice was loud and clear and easily carried over the crowd. Marie was fascinated with how everyone fell silent instantly when Lexa started her speech.

“We are gathered here to implement justice” the commander said loudly “Justice for the insult against our very culture from Charles from the Sky people and two other members of Skykru who tried to break into the tower to free the man. Two of our guards have been killed in the senseless act and blood must have blood. So it is their blood that will be spilled now”.

Sounds of approval came from the gathered crowd of citizens and Marie could see how eager they all seemed to watch how the promised blood would be spilt in a few moments.

The prisoners had been tied to three poles on the podium and the gag was removed from Pike’s mouth. The dark skinned man spit into one of the guard’s faces immediately and started shouting angrily.

“Gag him again” Lexa commanded in an almost lazy and bored tone, her green eyes staring at the bound man venomously.

Marie spotted Indra together with Octavia and Lincoln, who was lowly talking to Clarke, at the front of the crowd directly in front of the podium. Octavia and Clarke both looked nervous and the dark haired girl had a slight greenish tint to her skin, as if she would get sick any moment. She watched how Titus handed a ceremonial dagger to Lexa and the commander strode over to the prisoners placing one quick cut directly on the skin covering their collarbones and a cheer ran through the crowd at the first spilled blood.

Marie tried to contain a shudder glancing up at Anya for a moment before the woman stepped away from her meeting the commander halfway and taking the dagger from her gloved hand. The general placed her own cuts with a sure hand and she personally took satisfaction in making and seeing Pike bleed. She unobtrusively pressed Marie’s fingers in what she hoped to be a silent reassuring gesture when she handed the dagger over to their charge. Anya felt the shake to the girl’s small fingers but she walked with her back straight and her head held high.

Marie felt her breaths coming in erratic short bursts but she tried to school her features as she stepped up to Hannah Green first. With a sinking heart she could spot the resemblance between the woman and her son Monty in her aged face. Hannah’s dark eyes were angry as she stared down at Marie and the girl visibly faltered in her step, the dagger in her hand shaking strongly. But Marie kept her fingers locked around the handle of the dagger and placed a shallow cut on the woman’s exposed stomach directly above her hipbone.

She did not recognize the man tied to the pole next to her. Marie had no idea on which station he had been born but she doubted he had come from Farm Station. Her fingers shook less when she cut into his flesh quickly moving over to Pike. Marie met his heated glare with her chin jutted out defiantly. The cut she placed on his chest was the deepest she had done and her fingers had stopped shaking all together. She was still relived when she could hand over the dagger to Titus who already walked in her direction.

Marie walked back to Anya’s side feeling the woman’s presence calming her immediately. For her the real torture began now. Standing still beside Anya and waiting for the executions to come to an end seemed to take an eternity. It did not take long for Hannah and the other man to scream in pain when a new cut was placed on their bodies. Pike’s sounds of pain were muffled by the gag still in mouth but Marie was sure he would have started to scream as well by now. The screams rang loudly in her ears and after some time Marie was starting to feel slightly woozy and leant against Anya for support.

She barely registered when Hannah was the first one to die on the pole. The woman had not survived long enough for all the onlookers to receive the dagger at least once. The second man sustained longer but also died before the dagger had stopped its round. Pike was the only one to survive every cut and Marie heard the sound Lexa’s sword made when the commander pulled it from its scabbard to end the man’s life.

The crowd had started up to chant “Jus drein, jus daun” which made Marie shiver slightly as she inched closer to Anya. She felt the woman snake an arm around her shoulder pulling her closer.

The timing of the executions seemed to have been perfect. Marie could see the first rays of sunshine tinting the horizon into a warm orange, just as Lexa pushed the tip of her sword directly into Pike’s heart ending his life in a single precise movement.

The crowd instantly stopped its chanting as Lexa pulled the bloodied sword out of Pike’s body and the man’s head slumped forward onto his chest as his last breath left his body. The commander held up a hand silencing even the last whispers among the crowd and motioned to the guards to bring out the other eight prisoners.

The commander quickly proclaimed that these Skykru had been part of the group who had tried to enter the tower and break out Pike and would receive the chance for redemption through their traditional cleansing rite.

Marie had not known beforehand that the rites were usually performed by either the village chief, a blood relative or someone else close to the culprit.

As the culprits now were Skykru and not from one of their clans Lexa had accommodated the rites to be performed by the guards which had been on duty when the Skykru rebels tried to get in. Indra made the only exception and had stepped up to claim the right to perform the rite on Bellamy. If Octavia had already been introduced into Trikru she could have done so herself.

Marie watched on with widened eyes how the corpses of the three executed were removed from the poles and Bellamy was the first on to be tied to the pole in the middle with his back facing the crowd. His shirt was ripped open exposing his back and Indra stepped forward receiving a whip with three plaits. The dark skinned warrior spoke a few quiet words to the young man before she raised the whip above her head.

Anya felt the girl giving a jerk under her arm when Indra brought down the leash the first time with a resonating cracking sound. The general felt the girl shivering pressed against her and doubted the shivering came from the cold alone. She mused that Indra had warned the Skykru boy to contain his sounds of pain. She could see him gulping in air forcefully but he did not scream.

Clarke and Octavia were both visibly affected by what was going on and it looked like Lincoln had to physically hold both of them back from trying to interfere while Bellamy’s skin already showed angry red welts.

Lexa watched Bellamy’s punishment with expressionless features. After around ten lashes the skin on his back finally broke and blood started to flow down his back. He seemed to wince with every new lash but he remained resolutely silent.

After thirty lashes the commander called an end to the lashing. Indra had visibly broken a sweat and her breathing was heavy, but Bellamy had managed the actual rite without crying out. She motioned to guards to untie the young man from the pole and escort him back into the dungeons. He would stay there until the same time tomorrow and either be free to leave or perish to his wounds.

 

Chapter 118

Bellamy leaned heavily onto the guard who untied him, he would have probably fallen face flat onto the wood of the podium if not for the guard. Indra stepped in front of Octavia who had tried to hurry onto the podium and blocked her way to her brother, shaking her head vehemently and ordering the girl to return to her place in a sharp tone. Interfering now would mean a punishment for Octavia as well.

Marie watched how Jasper was the next one to be tied to the pole. The boy’s features were ashen and it was obvious seeing Bellamy receive his lashing had shocked him deeply. The wood beneath his feet was already coated in fresh blood giving it a weird wet shine as sun rays were reflected on it.

A guard she did not know by name stepped forth taking the whip from Indra. A bandage was visible under his light armour so he had probably been wounded during Skykru’s attack. The difference between the two became apparent quickly as he delivered the first lash against Jasper’s back. While Indra’s lashes had been anything but weak, the guard brought the whip down even more viciously breaking skin already with the third lash.

Anya felt Marie giving a small jump with every lash that cracked harshly against the boy’s back. The general watched with a slight frown and it was no wonder to her that the young man started to cry out in pain after the seventh lash. A short glance to the commander told her that Lexa still thought the delivery of the rite’s whipping acceptable so this boy’s fate was sealed now. Sometimes the commander could revoke the punishment as null if the delivery had not been done in an honourable way. There was a difference between vengeance and justice after all. 

“I declare his redemption failed” the commander’s voice was hard as it carried over the crowd “He will be brought to the edge of the Dead Zone, forbidden to step foot back on Kongeda land. If he returns, he is under a kill order”. Lexa’s eyes were cold and unyielding as she proclaimed the sentence.

Marie looked between the commander and Jasper with widened eyes. She still remembered the almost goofy boy from the drop ship, he had been one of the few who had been rather friendly to her. Jasper was white as a sheet as he was untied from the pole, his face contorted into a grimace of pain and his eyes looked wild with obvious horror.

On the edge of the podium Marie could see Clarke heatedly speaking with Indra and Lincoln, both of them were obviously trying to convince the blonde woman to remain where she was and not cause a public scene.

The punishment resumed a few moments later when a woman was tied to the pole. Marie did not recognize her and she had no idea if she had ever seen her before. The whip was handed over to another guard and he did not waste a moment to start carrying out the lashing. The crack of the whip still made Marie jump slightly and the woman also failed the rite, crying out once the whip started to break her skin.

It continued like that with two others, a young man and a slightly older woman, probably around Anya’s age, both of them unknown to Marie. Marie found it extremely hard to watch the rites and she shivered involuntarily.

The mood within the crowd seemed to shift now that three of the culprits had failed their rites. Jasper and the other two had been brought back into a cell and would be brought to the edge of the Dead Zone once travelling was possible again for a caravan. Marie thought that many within the crowd looked at the other culprits waiting for their rites disparagingly. They had obviously already made up their minds that the members of Skykru were too weak to pass the rites and gain redemption.

Marie was shivering strongly now fully leaned against Anya’s body. Although she felt cold, she could feel sweat gathering on her brow and she felt slightly sick again. She recognized the next young woman being tied to the pole. It took her a few moments to place her, but she remembered that Zoe Monroe had also been part of the 100. She had not dealt much with her personally but Marie recognized the way she had worn her hair styled in three braids she was also wearing now.

When Anya looked down again at her charge worry flitted over her features, the girl’s face was even paler now and a sheen of sweat glistened on her face already smudging some of the war paint. The general had attributed her shivering to having to watch first the executions and now the lashing, but as she unobtrusively placed a hand on the girl’s neck above the collar of her coat she felt the girl’s skin heated and feverish.

There were still three rites waiting to be witnessed before they could return to the tower and Anya clenched her jaw, impatient for the whole procedure to be over. She knew she needed to get the girl back into the bed and rest as soon as possible. Anya opened her own coat enveloping the girl in the additional material and pulling her closer against herself, trying to warm her up.

The commander turned her head slightly catching Anya’s movements in the corner of her eye. Marie did barely register that Zoe succeeded in the lashing and was brought into the tower as well to wait in the dungeons with Bellamy for the next day, before they would be released back to Skykru. Although Lexa could not see much of their charge, it was still obvious that the girl obviously did not feel well. With a gesture of her hand she motioned for the next guard to step forward and continue the lashings, the sooner it was over the sooner Marie could be brought back into bed.

There was still one young woman and two young men waiting for their rites. The commander regarded them mutely as the next guard pulled forth one of the men. All three of them were pale faced and the fear was palpable in their eyes. The young man with dark hair and blue eyes steeled himself against the pole, keeping his mouth slightly open as the first lash crack upon his back harshly. Lexa could see him taking in a mouthful of shocked air at the pain but he remained silent. He managed to stay silent to the thirty lashes she had deemed enough for their rites and was escorted into the dungeons.

When another guard stood forth to retrieve the young woman still waiting, she started to plead shaking her head with tears gathered in her eyes “No, no, please”. The woman’s physical defences were feeble at best and the singular guard pulled her along as if he was pulling at a petulant child, seemingly without any effort.

The commander halted the guard and stepped closer to the woman “Do you not wish to undergo the rite of redemption?” she asked voice carefully emotionless, although internally she was confused; none of her own people would have even thought to refuse the rites. It was regarded as one of the greatest dishonoured deeds amongst her own people because it truly meant you were unwilling to face the consequences of your actions instead choosing to run from them like a coward.

But the young woman tied to the pole shook her head vehemently, eyes wild and her whole body shaking in obvious fright, trying to pull at the bindings keeping her tied to the pole. The commander stared the woman down silently for a moment, green eyes blazing angrily. She motioned for the guard who had tied her to the pole to free her.

An angry mutter went through the crowd reflecting the emotion burning in their leader’s eyes, as they watched the Skykru woman’s obvious relieve at having been spared from the lashing.

The last young man that awaited his own rite of redemption was more composed, he came willingly with the guard to the pole and he did not fight it when he was tied to the wood. Setting his feet firmly shoulder-width on the podium, putting his hands onto the pole for leverage and his mouth also slightly open. The lashing was delivered without many pauses and it was over soon, the man had succeeded as well.

The Skykru delegation which had been held back by a group of guards was now led to the tower. The corpses of Charles Pike, Hannah Green and the third man had been placed on a pyre and as the last act of the punishments the commander was handed a torch and ignited the pyre.

Lexa motioned for the group flanking the Skykru delegation to lead them into the tower. They would not be required to wait and see the pyre burn down, justice had been served and the punishments handed out. The one’s who had failed the rites would be brought to the edge of the Dead Zone by the next caravan travelling in that direction and the others would be free to leave the dungeons tomorrow, if they survived.

The commander spoke another few words to the crowd that did not register at all into Marie’s mind. The girl was now only being upheld by Anya, her whole body hot and cold at once and her legs unwilling to carry her weight any longer.

When Lexa started her way back to the tower Anya just swooped their charge into her arms. The lack of response from Marie to that alarmed her greatly. She had seen that the girl’s grey eyes were opened but they had a glassy look to them and the girl seemed torpid altogether. Lexa waited for them inside the tower to catch up.

The commander turned around and her green eyes were worried when she spotted Marie’s body hanging almost limply in Anya’s arms. From the corner of her eye she could already see the Skykru delegation nearing the tower and Clarke’s blonde hair stood out a mile among them. Lexa reached out with a gloved hand, fingertips ice cold, and gently touched the girl’s forehead.

“She is burning up” she noted with concern in her tone; the girl’s skin had felt almost boiling against her chilled fingertips. Lexa had not expected the girl’s fever to return with this severity.

Anya nodded her brown eyes reflecting the same deep worry and she slightly shook the girl in her arms trying to get a reaction from the child. “Marie?” she addressed the girl loudly, but there was no reaction from her.

“Bring her back into my chambers” the commander instructed and she took a step back from her general.

Before Anya could move in the direction of the elevator the Skykru delegation reached the entrance of the tower, Clarke preceding them. Her blue eyes still showed how shaken she was by the events she had just witnessed, but they got determined when she spotted and Marie and her obvious relapse. “I told you to keep her in bed for longer” her voice was tinted with annoyance and her eyes looked accusingly between Anya and the commander. Both of them bristled visibly at the direct accusation.

But Clarke did not wait for a verbal reaction from them and turned back to the other Skykru following her, specifically to her mother. “Did you bring the antibiotics I asked you to?” she questioned the older woman and Abby nodded motioning to the bag slung over her shoulder.

“An infusion will work quicker than giving her oral medication” Clarke said “It would be advisable to have her lie down for the infusion”.

The commander nodded by now familiar enough with the medicines Skykru used to know what the other woman meant. “We will talk about the specifics of Skykru joining the coalition in the throne room” she addressed the Skykru delegation.

Anya carried Marie to the elevator closely followed by Clarke. The doors of the elevator had barely closed when Clarke spoke up “Why can’t we see Bellamy and the others? They have passed the rites, have they not?”

The general thinned her lips at the obvious demand in the blonde’s tone “No, they have not. The rites end when the sun rises again tomorrow.”

“What does that mean?” Clarke demanded to know, worried confusion flashing over her face.

Anya sighed under breath, annoyed that obviously no one had described the specifics of the cleansing ritual to them. “The lashing was only part of the rites. If you succeeded to endure the lashing in silence, you would spent another day without help in silent contemplation.”

“Without aid?” Clarke questioned her voice slightly pitched higher.

Anya nodded “No one is allowed to see them. So no healers either”.

Clarke gulped in a mouthful of air forcefully “That is barbaric” the accusation her returned into her voice.

“Oh” Anya raised a questioning brow at the younger woman, her voice clearly showing her waning patience with the nonsense coming from the blonde leader. “And how pray tell would your people have punished the culprits on your Ark?” her voice was laced with a bitter sense of irony, already knowing the answer to her rhetorical question.

Clarke fiddled with the strap of the bag she had received from her mother looking anywhere but at Anya. But Anya simply waited staring at her with hard brown eyes, until the blonde conceded and sighed “They would have been floated” she admitted voice almost like a petulant child.

“So to get this straight once for all” Anya addressed her, voice as hard as her eyes. The general was almost relieved that Clarke had chosen to address the matter with her now in the privacy of the elevator, instead of facing the commander within the meeting and causing another scene and affront between their people.

“My people in comparison to yours, do not punish all crimes with death” she insisted vehemently her brown eyes boring into Clarke’s blue ones “Our ways may seem barbaric to your people, but your people are in fact no less barbaric then we are. It would be better for your people to realize that we are in fact not so different”. The general thought that Lexa had finally realized that Skykru indeed needed to be handled with the same unrelenting strictness and strength like the other clans and she doubted Clarke’s special treatment would last much longer, if the blonde kept on pushing her publicly.

Clarke seemed to mull her words over in the silence of her head on the rest of the way to the commander’s quarters. Two guards were still standing post outside of the door, after an assassin had found his way into the rooms while they had been unguarded, the doors were now under guard the complete day.

Anya stripped Marie from her coat and boots and laid the girl down on the bed while Clarke spread the contents of the bag onto a table next to the bed, assorting what she needed for Marie now.

The general watched with curious eyes how Clarke cleaned the crook of Marie’s arm with what she supposed to be alcohol judging from the smell and then set up a cannula in her arm for the injection. The young woman used a weird contraption Anya had already seen in the medical bay of the Ark to listen to Marie’s breathing for a few moments.

“Her breathing sounds slightly better” Clarke proclaimed to Anya storing some of the equipment back into the bag “But the relapse is not the best sign. The antibiotics should kick in quickly though. I have also given her something to bring down the fever quicker, it should start showing effects in a few minutes”.

Anya nodded sitting down in the chair beside the bed. She would be staying with Marie for now. She would have liked to be present for the negotiations with Skykru but she knew Lexa would tell her how everything had gone later anyway and her own input was not needed for that matter.

But Clarke obviously wanted to join the meeting “I will go to the throne room. She should be fine now. If her conditions worsens, have someone call me” she instructed.

The blonde lingered for a moment with a contemplative expression on her young features “Would Lexa have been in her rights to execute all of them?” it was clear she meant the Skykru culprits.

Anya scrutinized Clarke for a moment before she nodded “Only guards are allowed to carry weapons in the capitol. Bringing ones into the capitol is regarded as high treason. It was generous off the commander to afford them the rites of redemption.”

Clarke nodded that she understood. There was still so much about the culture of the grounders she had no idea about. But she knew that Anya was correct, if something like that would have happened on the Ark, all of them would have been floated without any hesitation. She left the commander’s chambers without another word, internally mulling over why Lexa had not insisted on executing all of them. She doubted that she submitting to the commander publicly would have really been enough to warrant the milder punishments.

It had not taken Clarke long to set up the treatment for Marie, but the mood in the throne room was tense already. Kane seemed frustrated, while her mother openly glared at the commander. Lexa herself sat on her throne, back rigid and shoulders tensed, jaw locked tightly and the stare in her green eyes hard and unrelenting. The only acknowledgment the commander gave her was a slight tilt of her head and a flitting glance at her arrival.

Clarke squared her shoulders exhaling loudly “What is the problem?” she asked, the question solely addressed to her mother and Kane. She had feared that the council would not just accept Lexa’s terms to join the coalition. But she was hyperaware of the fact that joining the coalition was the only thing that would grant them at least a little security and stability. She had by now heard enough about the clans of the Kongeda to know that even contemplating to face them in a war was idiotic at best, they stood absolutely no chance against the joined clans.

Clarke thought she briefly was able to spot a flash of amusement dancing through the commander’s jade coloured eyes before they turned hard again, but she kept her attention on her mother and Kane glaring at them demandingly.

“To join the coalition…” her mother said spitting the word “coalition” venomously “… we need to surrender our guns, all of our guns!” The disbelief was clear in her tone and her brown eyes were glittering angrily.

She shortly glanced up at the commander but her face was expressionless as if carved from stone and Clarke had the sinking realization that she would not budge on that requirement. Clarke could even understand the other leader demanding they gave up their weapons. The guns must be the hugest obstacle separating them from the other clans, Lexa would be crazy not to use her superior position to force them to disarm.

“As I have told you, you will need to destroy your guns once the cold season has faded and the snow melted” the commander butted in and Clarke nodded. Letting them keep their guns for the next few months would allow them time to learn to live and hunt without them and to build defences that did not rely on the weapons.

“We will do it” Clarke reassured to the other leader not regarding Kane or her mother. Both of them were now glaring at her.

“Clarke, no” her mother retorted forcefully “After what happened to our people here, we…”

Clarke did not let her mother finish. Although she had not been aware of what the rites of redemption actually were Lincoln had told them it would be a physical punishment. She knew that Kane and her mother had wanted to demand all of them to be handed back to Skykru, but those who had failed the rites were now on their own and who knew if the others survived the night without aid. “Mom, what would we have done, if a group of their people invaded Arkadia and killed two guards? On the Ark all of them would have been floated”.

It was Kane who actually gave a verbal answer. The anger had drained from his face to be replaced with exhaustion “A shock lashing. We are not as different as it seemed…”

 

Chapter 119

The meeting was long and tedious for the commander. The Skykru delegation tried to discuss every little detail of her demands trying to find little things she could change to accommodate their needs better.

But Lexa had steeled herself before meeting with Markus Kane and she would not budge on a single thing. It was their choice to either join the coalition or to leave her lands.

“You seem to mistake my rule for a democracy” Lexa intervened in Abby’s argument.

The woman had spent the last minutes listing off reasons why Skykru did not need to pay reparations to Trikru. After she had made it clear that there would be reparations the arguments had switched from having to pay them at all to the scale of the reparations and how long they had time to pay them.

Surprisingly enough Clarke had been the one to sort of mediate between the commander and the representatives of the Skykru council thus far.

Abby’s mouth had closed with an audible snap at the interruption from the commander and her brown eyes blazed angrily, a vein on her temple stood out signifying the woman’s anger.

Lexa was unmoved by the older woman’s anger and met her heated gaze with an unyielding hard glare. Her own patience was slowly running out for the Skykru council. She had not expected the meeting to be easy, but she had also not expected that it turned into this nightmare out of endless and pointless discussions.

“It is simple” the commander said voice firm and leaned forward slightly in her throne “You either accept my turns and become the thirteenth clan. Or you don’t”.

The silence that settled into the room was heavy and tense. Clarke and Kane both looked slightly alarmed to be faced with the decision now outright, without any potential for negotiations.

But before either of them could say anything, Abby’s patience seemed to snap. The woman glared angrily at the commander taking a single step in the direction of the throne and already both Gustus and Ryder had their hands on the hilts of their swords.

“Simple?!” Abby echoed voice almost sarcastic “If you think your rule has anything to do with a democracy, you obviously don’t know the meaning of the word!”

Clarke gulped in a surprised bout of air turning to her mother with utter alarm on her face, while Lexa sat up straight on her throne reaching her full height. The commander glared at the impertinent woman before her setting her jaw angrily. Ryder and Gustus both shortly glanced to her, waiting for an order if they should intervene on her behalf.

“I advise you to mind your tongue” Lexa said voice calm but hinting with a dangerous note “Or I will see that it is removed from your mouth”.

The commander stood from her throne jutting out her chin while she shortly looked at every representative of Skykru “You have an hour to decide. If you have not decided by then, you will be brought out of Polis and have until the next full moon to leave your settlement”.

“Lexa…” Clarke addressed her voice desperate bidding the commander to wait, but Lexa ignored the blonde leader and simply strode through the throne room. She had listened long enough to their pleas and thought she had made it clear that she did not care all that much for their terms.

“Guard the doors until the hour is up” the commander ordered to the guards stationed at the door “They are not to leave this room until a decision is made”.

Lexa thought about going up to her chambers for the hour to check in on Marie, but she knew that Anya would be keeping the girl vigil. Titus had scheduled a training session with the Ice Nation nightblood after the executions, so she judged him to still be occupied with Ontari and she wanted to watch how the younger girl fared for herself.

The guards told her that the flamekeeper had just returned from his training session with Ontari and that the girl had been brought back into the guarded room. Lexa nodded to the young man and left in the direction of the elevator again. She could just talk with the girl again on her own and see if her attitude had already changed slightly or not. The longer the girl was kept here in Polis Lexa expected her reactions to get more honest.

The room where Ontari was kept in was guarded by two guards at all times. At the moment a young woman and judging from her tattoos she was born into the Shallow Valley clan and a man, hair already greying in places from Trikru. Both nodded respectfully to her and the door was pulled open for her immediately.

A healer was tending to a wound on Ontari’s back. Titus had told her how experienced the younger girl already was in combat, but she obviously did not yet match up completely with Titus’ own skill. The healer turned at the sound of the open door and halted in his care for the nightblood.

Lexa simply nodded to him, recognizing the young man as one of the healers’ second of the tower not yet a full-fledged healer in his own right and motioned for him to resume tending to the wound.

Ontari’s frame was tense under the hands of the healer and it was obvious that the girl was highly uncomfortable with having to bare her back to the healer, but Lexa could spot her tense even more after the girl’s dark eyes shortly connected with her own.

Above the dark blood tainting the girl’s pale skin the commander could see deep scars running all over the younger girl’s back. Marie had told her about the scars assuming that they stemmed from a whip and Lexa internally agreed with their young charge. It was obvious Ontari’s upbringing had been less than gentle and she felt a flash of sympathy for the younger nightblood. She herself had been punished a few times with a lashing but Titus who had administered the punishment had been careful not to leave scars on her body. So Lexa knew how severely and probably repeatedly the girl must have been subjected to this form of punishment to leave scars this deep on her back. She would need to instil into Titus that using physical punishments on the girl would be unacceptable, if she had survived and endured them already she doubted they would show any effect on Ontari now.

She waited patiently and silently for the healer to finish in his task and watched impassively how he wound a bandage tightly around Ontari’s back; after another silent nod the healer left them.

Ontari had immediately turned around once the healer’s hands had left her body unwilling to sit with her back to the commander. It was obvious to Lexa that the younger nightblood still expected her to simply kill her and be done with her.

Trying to lessen the distance and obvious distrust between them Lexa sat down on the far edge of the small bed, the startled expression flitting over Ontari’s features were proof enough that the younger girl recognized the move for the show of trust it had been.

“What is your opinion on Skykru joining the coalition?” Lexa addressed the girl in an even tone and open and curious expression.

Ontari blinked at her for a moment clearly surprised by the question. But Lexa had discussed the same thing already with the other novitiates and she thought it important to try to treat Ontari at least as equal to the others as possible.

Silence settled between them for long moments and Ontari seemed to think hard about how to answer the question, dark eyes almost insecure.

“There is no right or wrong answer, Ontari” Lexa said after a few moments in a calm tone. “This is not a test” she added reassuringly “You will see that I discuss political decisions with the novitiates”.

“You do?” Ontari asked back in a surprised tone. The commander doubted that Nia would heed advice from an advisor; she knew for a fact from the few spies that had infiltrated Ice Nation that Nia had killed almost all of her advisors, keeping only a few for appearance sake. She nodded to the younger girl’s question.

“Why?” Ontari continued to question her, still not answering the commander’s original question.

Lexa regarded the other nightblood calmly for a moment before she answered “Everyone has a unique way of perception. You might think of something my mind has not come across yet. And how should I expect the novitiates to learn if I do not know the way the make decisions”.

Ontari searched the commander’s face for a few more silent moments before she started to speak again, voice still cautious as she finally answered the original question “Skykru are alien, their tech makes them dangerous”.

It was obvious the girl seemed to await some form of repercussion for speaking her mind like that, but Lexa simply nodded “True. But they do not necessarily have to remain dangerous”.

“So you let them join the coalition?” the nightblood asked with a furrowed brow, the doubt on her face was apparent without any need for words. It was clear if she was in the commander’s place she would have decided to annihilate Skykru without further question.

“The choice is theirs” Lexa answered evenly “They will either accept my terms or leave the Kongeda’s lands”.

The girl’s brows remained furrowed as she thought that over internally. “Why not just kill them all?” she questioned after another silent moment.

“What would I gain from killing them now?” Lexa retorted crossing her legs over each other sitting more comfortably. Ontari did not seem to contemplate actually attacking her at the moment.

“Mmh” the girl grunted noncommittally “They could attack you instead”.

“They could” Lexa agreed “But although an open war against Skykru is bound to cause heavy losses, their clan is small. Too small to hold their own against the armies of the Kongeda. They know that”.

“But still, why let them live?” Ontari asked after she nodded with a contemplative expression.

Lexa was aware of the duality of the question. The girl was probably still wondering why she had not ordered her execution and took the risk in letting her live, so she contemplated her words carefully before she answered.

“The same things that make Skykru dangerous also might make them valuable” Lexa started to explain “While it is true that they might use their tech against us, they could also become a valuable ally. Their medical treatments are highly superior to ours, their tech offers things we have long lost after the old world ended. And I do believe that they deserve a chance to show their worth”.

The last part was specifically aimed at the duality of the question and the realization flashing through Ontari’s dark eyes showed that the younger nightblood had also noted that. Ontari nodded before she thought of something else “Why have you not questioned me on my que…” the girl interrupted her question for a moment doubt flitting over her features before she adapted the wording of the question. “Why have you not questioned me on Nia’s plans yet?” it was obviously something Ontari must have wondered about a lot.

Lexa regarded the girl with an insistent gaze for a moment “Would I have been able to trust any of your words?”

“Mmh” Ontari grunted again averting her gaze for a moment before she looked back at the commander’s face admitting “Probably not” in a doubting tone. It was apparent to Lexa that the younger nightblood must have started to question the Ice queen already.

“The Skykru your people rescued from Azgeda…” Ontari let her words trail off with an indecisive expression on her features.

“What about them?” Lexa asked simply waiting for the girl to make up her mind. It seemed the girl had additional information and was debating with herself whether to give them up or not.

After a few moments of both of them silently staring at the other Ontari started to speak again “… they were not the only ones”.

“There are more Skykru within Ice Nation?” Lexa questioned to make sure she understood correctly.

Ontari nodded after a moment of hesitation “There are some left within the ruin of their ship that crashed onto our land. They were given to one of the generals”.

Lexa felt the girl’s dark eyes intently focused on her own features and the commander nodded. She was aware that Ontari had no real reason yet to share any information willingly with her but on the other hand she could not think of a way the girl could profit from giving her false information like this as well.

“You know that this gives me more reason to call Nia to Polis to answer in front of the ambassadors?” Lexa checked after a moment.

The dark haired girl nodded and Lexa thought to spot a flash of thirst for revenge in her dark eyes before they were schooled into blankness again. The commander did not know if the girl wished for revenge against herself for crossing her plans or if a small part of her might even wish to see the Ice queen dead for all she must have endured under her. “But she won’t come until she has another plan to see you dethroned” Ontari interrupted her thoughts by speaking up again.

Lexa nodded with a contemplative expression; she was aware that Nia was anything but stupid and she would do well not to underestimate the older woman. She had no idea why she was so fixed on seeing her removed from the throne of the commander in the first place but she guessed that she would discover the reasoning when they faced each other again.

“How did you punish your second?” Ontari asked voice once again insecure and her eyes clearly showed hesitation fearing that she might have overstepped with her question.

“Punished her what exactly?” Lexa reflected the question back. She thought that understanding how the younger girl thought would certainly help in judging her character and reactions later on. The fact that she surely would someday face Nia again pulled to the front of her mind; when this event came to pass she needed to know if Ontari would not take the first chance to betray her and to return to her queen’s side.

“For not killing me, for trying to heal me, for returning when she had the chance to run” Ontari listed off with a frown; the fact that Marie had chosen to help her was obviously still hard to understand for her.

“Marie has not been punished for any of those” the commander answered calmly “In a way she followed my orders by choosing not to kill you and to heal you. As the commander’s second it is her duty to guard all sacred nightbloods. Regarding the fact that she returned to you, Marie is still too inexperienced in this world to survive a night on her own in a snow storm, so this decision might as well have saved her own life. The only thing that would be punishable was leaving the protection of the tower against the strict orders not to do so”.

Ontari seemed to take a rather long time to think this information through and Lexa mutely watched the varying emotions flitting over her features. Although it was clear that someone must have already tried to instil in the younger nightblood that showing your emotions openly on your face was a source of weakness, it was also obvious that Ontari still needed to completely master this skill as Lexa could spot cracks in her façade showing through every few moments. It was obvious as well that Ontari did not agree wholeheartedly to her views.

“Where do you disagree?” Lexa questioned curiously after having given Ontari sufficient time to think.

Ontari took another moment before she finally answered brows still furrowed “I doubt Nia would have been this…” the girl paused obviously searching for the correct word “…lenient” she finally settled on.

“I do not think you can be compared fairly to Marie, nor can I be compared to queen Nia” the commander commented thoughtfully. Internally Lexa thought about how Anya would have probably reacted had she done something similar in her own youth, but she was convinced her general would not have reacted drastically different.

“No, I don’t think the comparison would be fair on either account” Ontari retorted and Lexa stood from the bed; she had spent longer with the nightblood than she had planned and the hour she had given to make their final decision Skykru had long passed.

“I…” Ontari speaking up once again halted the commander’s retreat and she turned around slightly tilting her face into her direction to glance back at the younger nightblood “…hope she gets better soon”. Ontari had seen how the commander’s second’s condition had worsened during the execution.

Lexa nodded mutely at Ontari before she strode from the small room. On her way back to the throne room her thoughts kept on circling around the younger nightblood. She did not know yet how much they could trust her words but her concern for Marie had seemed honest. She thought the girl had obviously started to contemplate the differences between herself and Nia; only time would tell to which conclusion Ontari had come.

 

The guard still stood their post in front of the doors to the throne room as she neared the doors through the corridors, her boots loudly foretelling her arrival.

She strode into the opened doors without a single beat of hesitation. All heads of the representatives of Skykru turned in her direction immediately. The commander noted on the relive flitting over their expressions at her arrival. The extra wait had probably made them assume she had changed her mind and that they had lost their invitation into the coalition.

Lexa turned around in front of her throne sinking down onto the throne in one fluid graceful motion. Ryder and Gustus both seemed rather relieved to see her return as well, she doubted they would have enjoyed the long-time having to stand still listening to Skykru discussing back and forth.

The Skykru representatives seemed to wait for her to speak first, but Lexa let them stew a moment longer before she asked “What is your answer, Markus of the Sky people?”

“We would be honoured to join the coalition, commander” Markus answered inclining his head respectfully; Abby still looked slightly critical but it was obvious that the others had make her see reason.

The words did not surprise her, but she still exhaled a long breath of her own relief; she still did not want to go into war against Skykru. The commander nodded her head “You will receive the brand of the coalition tomorrow. Now we can talk about the specifics”.

 

 

Chapter 120

Lexa dismissed the Skykru representatives after she had explained all of the specific requirements to them and how the initiation as the thirteenth clan would occur later. Clarke lingered behind and motioned for her mother to go when the woman seemed intent to wait up on her.

The commander inclined her head waiting for the blonde woman to say what was on her mind. The rest of the meeting had gone over rather well. The Skykru representatives seemed to finally have understood that she was still in the superior position and that they depended on her good grace. It was obvious that giving up their weapons was still a hard blow to them, but they would need to adapt to surviving without them. Markus had recognized that paying reparations in the form of tech and medicine might open trade with the other clans later on, once the clans had become acquainted with what they could offer.

“Thank you” Clarke said nodding to Lexa with an honest expression her blue eyes expressive in their gratitude.

The commander furrowed her brow and stood from her throne. The thanks from Clarke had taken her off guard completely and she motioned to the other woman to join her on the balcony. Lexa welcomed the icy breeze on her face once she stepped outside calming her racing thoughts. The shine in Clarke’s eyes had unsettled her somehow.

“I had not expected you to support me like you have done against your people” the commander said placing her gloved hands on the railing of the balcony. She had expected the blonde leader to try to get the best consequences solely for the benefit of Skykru but she had either misinterpreted Clarke’s intentions or the girl had started to truly understand the new culture surrounding them.

Clarke visibly shivered exposed to the ice cold air; the air in the throne room had been heated not just by fire and the fresh air felt almost like a shock to her system. “It was …” Clarke started but halted after a moment averting her gaze from the commander’s piercing eyes. After an audible sigh she said “You are right, my people cannot expect to get better treatment than how you deal with the other clans. But I still fear it will take time for the council to adapt to having someone placed above them with even more power”.

Lexa lightly shook her head “I am not interested in ruling every little aspect of Skykru’s live. The clans govern themselves mostly, we do share common laws though. As long as there are no problems with the other clans or I will need to call on the clans for a war, there is not much that will change for them. Skykru will still need to leave an ambassador of their own in the capitol to sit in on meetings with the other ambassadors.”

Clarke nodded again and looked out over the city below them; it still fascinated her how the grounders had rebuilt their world and started to flourish even through the constant wars they had fought. The blonde girl gritted her teeth thinking of something “My mother wants me to return with them” the unwillingness to follow that order was clear on her face.

Lexa waited for a moment unsure of what the other girl was expecting her to say, but when Clarke’s blue eyes returned to hers the anger vanished from them replaced a clear plea; so the commander reassured “You are welcome to stay in Polis as long as you wish”.

Relieve seemed to flash over Clarke’s features and she nodded with a small smile pulling at her lips. After a moment of silence an almost playful expression surfaced on the blonde’s face “I would have never thought to stand here now” she said.

Lexa raised a brow questioningly at the other woman unsure of what she was hinting at. She had turned slightly leaning her hip against the railing and looking now fully at Clarke.

A slight blush appeared on Clarke’s pale cheeks and there was a hitch to her voice “I meant standing here with you”.

Lexa blinked once at her and averted her eyes back over the city below them; she was still searching for a fitting answer when Clarke shifted beside her.

When Lexa turned back to face the other woman Clarke’s features had lost their playfulness and turned serious once again. “I know that I lashed out unfairly against you” the blonde admitted and it was obvious on her face that she had thought long and hard about what she wanted to say before now. Her voice was grave and her eyes seemed distant and Lexa could see a deep shiver run through Clarke’s frame as she remembered something. “You did not force me to push the lever in the Mountain” she added with a heavy sigh “And you are right, I would have taken the deal as well and I did betray the allies we had in the Mountain”. It was apparent how heavy the guilt still rested on the other leader’s shoulders. Her pale face seemed to have lost even the last ounce of colour and her blue eyes looked rather empty and haunted.

The commander watched her turmoil for long silent moments unsure of how to best proceed. Their last interactions had shown her how easy the mood between them could shift again if one wrong word was uttered. After another moment Lexa let the compassion she felt for the blonde show in her green eyes, dropping her façade slightly in front of her and her voice was soft and reassuring as she said “I understand”.

Even though it were two simple words Clarke did look at her with a silent understanding passing between them. “Thank you, commander” Clarke retorted her lips ghosting into a smile again before the blonde turned around and left, probably to seek out her mother.

Lexa remained on the balcony for longer moments staring behind the blonde lost in her thoughts. She would gladly offer Clarke the understanding and support her own people seemed unable to offer to her. The next days would surely show if they would be able to at least get along civilly from now on.

Titus came into the throne room a few moments later calling her back inside. When Lexa strode back into the room her expression was schooled once again and were free of all emotion. “Flamekeeper” she greeted her former teacher with an incline of her head “What of the prisoners?”

The bald man’s expression hard to decipher at the moment but Lexa thought he did not look pleased with the outcome of the rites. “The girl and one boy are feverish, the other two are enduring their fate”.

Lexa nodded; it was common after such a rite of redemption for someone who had succeeded in the lashing to still develop an infection and succumb to that. But she knew that the Skykru medicine might still save them later, so she pushed the prisoners from her mind asking Titus instead when the ambassadors were expected to assemble to meet with her. The impending meeting had obviously been the reason Titus had searched her out and the ambassadors were only waiting for his signal to be allowed entry into the throne room.

She turned and sat down on her throne crossing her legs over each other casually and sat up straight, before she nodded to Titus motioning him to call the ambassadors in. Internally Lexa was steeling herself for another long and tedious meeting.

In the meantime Anya still sat beside the commander’s bed keeping watch over Marie. Judging from the position of the sun it was nearing midday already and Marie still had not shown any outward change in her condition. Worried slightly Anya put aside the book she had been reading and gently put a hand on the girl’s forehead. The girl’s skin had cooled down considerably and Anya found it normal to the touch again, but a layer of cold sweat clung to the girl’s pale complexion and the black war paint had become heavily smudged because of it.

Marie stirred under the gentle touch and a moment later her grey eyes blinked open again. The girl’s eyes were confused as she could not clearly remember how she had even gotten into the bed. “What happened?” Marie asked groggily with a husky voice and scratchy throat “Are the executions already over?”

She tried to make sense of what had happened and she thought to remember placing her own cuts but she was not really sure either. It was all a mystified haze in her mind and she scrunched up her brow in thought and when she felt an uncomfortable pressure in her arm, Marie looked down and spotted the cannula.

Anya pulled the girl’s fingers from her arm trying to pull out the cannula still connecting her to a weird plastic bag. “Do not pull it out” the woman said strictly; Clarke had described to her that the plastic bag contained things to help Marie feel better faster and keep the fever under control.

Marie nodded but turned her grey eyes questioningly on the woman sitting beneath her.

“The executions are over, yes” Anya answered her previous questions “And your fever spiked up again. Clarke brought something to help you”.

“Where is Lexa?” Marie asked next after glancing around the room and not spotting the other woman anywhere.

“Probably still in a meeting with Skykru” Anya retorted and stood up to retrieve a bowl of water and a wash cloth for Marie to at least be able to wash her face and clear it off the black pigment.

When she returned from the bathroom Marie had sat up on the bed and Risha had crawled on top of the girl’s legs and she was scratching the wolf behind its ears making it emit a purring sound of contentment. 

Anya put the bowl with water on a table beside the bed and wetter a cloth, wringing it off the excess water and beckoned the girl closer. “Close your eyes” she ordered in a calm tone and waited for Marie to comply before starting to remove the black pigment from her charge’s features.

“Will Skykru enter the coalition?” Marie wanted to know next forcing Anya to stop washing her face momentarily. Her voice still sounded husky so Anya pushed a cup with tea into her fingers almost forcefully, judging from the talkativeness of the girl she truly felt much better and the medication from Skykru had kicked in fast.

“I do not know yet, Marie” she answered calmly and lightly glared at the girl when she made to open her mouth again. Marie looked up at her with a sheepish expression and closed her eyes again waiting patiently for Anya to finish. The water had turned a greyish colour in the bowl once the girl’s skin was cleaned off all of the pigment.

“What happens now?” the girl immediately chirped up when Anya put the cloth to the side.

The woman narrowed her eyes slightly at the obviously recovered child, wondering how the medication could have worked this fast already; all traces of the fever were gone from Marie’s face and although the girl’s complexion was still pale she did look a lot better. “That depends on Skykru’s decision” Anya finally answered after a moment of letting Marie wait “If they decline, we will be at war. If they agree, the initiation of the thirteenth clan will take place tomorrow”.

“Why not today still?” Marie questioned with a furrowed brow.

“Until the prisoners have been released it would be as if to start the initiation in an unfavourable grace” Anya answered and when Marie immediately opened her mouth to ask more she silenced her with a quick raise of her hand. “I am sure you should try to sleep a bit and rest more” her tone was strict and unyielding. The woman found it suspicious just how quickly Marie had suddenly recovered after the injection and wanted to keep her calm and rested for longer, at least until Clarke returned and could tell her that the girl was alright again.

Marie scrunched up her brow and lightly scowled at the woman, clearly absolutely unimpressed with her suggestion. “But I am not tired” the girl insisted “Like, not at all tired” she added immediately when Anya raised a critical brow at her charge.

“You are still staying inside this bed” Anya retorted in a decisive tone and her eyes were strict.

“But…” Marie started to counter grey eyes pleading with her mentor.

“No” Anya said calmly “You are not getting out of bed, at least not until Clarke has taken that out”. She motioned to the cannula in Marie’s arm and outright ignored the pout on the girl’s features. The general picked up the book from the table next to the bed and handed it over to Marie together with a sheet of paper and something to write. “Practise then” she ordered with a pointed look and was relieved when Marie obediently took the things and pulled her knees up to her chest, placing the book on her legs and immediately started to practise. Anya waited a few moments to see if the girl would start to speak again, but when Marie remained silent for some minutes she picked up her own book again and resumed reading quietly.

Anya already heard the commander’s approach by the clicking sounds of her heavy boots against the floor in the corridor long before the doors were pulled open for her and put down her book, slightly turning around to face the other woman and trying to decipher her expression.

Marie looked up from her book with a startled expression when Lexa unbuckled her shoulder guard and let it drop onto a stool with a rather loud bang. A soft smile played at her lips when she recognized the commander and the girl closed the book on her lap looking at the leader expectedly.

Before Lexa could say anything Alira entered the room behind her carrying a tray with food into the chamber and placing it on the table in front of the couches. The older handmaid also had a set of clean bandages with her to look after the gash on Lexa’s side.

The woman mutely helped the commander in quickly undressing out of the armour she had worn and changed the bandage around her upper body with practised fingers. The wound did not look infected but it would remain covered for a few more days to rule an insetting infection out.

Anya watched Lexa submitting to Alira’s treatment in silence noting on the exhaustion that was apparent on the young leader’s face. But her jaw was not locked tightly and there was no frown on her features, so the general gathered that the meetings must have gone over well and that the commander was satisfied with the outcome.

Lexa put on only a shirt after Alira had finished and dismissed the handmaiden again with a silent nod. Alira took the cloth and the bowl with the used water with her before she left. When the commander turned facing both of them her expression was calm beneath the war paint. A flash of relieve showed in her green eyes at seeing their charge obviously improved considerably already, but her eyes remained on her former mentor.

“Skykru will join the coalition” Lexa proclaimed to her general and Anya nodded with an audible sigh. Skykru joining the coalition could truly help all of them to prosper later, but Anya was also aware that it might still be only a question of time before a new conflict between Skykru and the other clans developed.

“So there won’t be a war?” Marie chirped in curiously her grey eyes shining.

Lexa nodded “There won’t be war between Skykru and the Kongeda”.

“I am glad” the girl commented with an honest smile, before it dimmed slightly “Many warriors would have died facing guns”.

Both Anya and Lexa looked a little surprised at their charge’s obvious compassion for the people born on the ground. The girl must have truly started to see herself as a part of them to feel this way. But while Anya had a smile tugging at her lips, Lexa looked at the girl with an unreadable expression on her face.

“And they accepted all the conditions?” the general questioned with a suspicious frown. Lexa had discussed beforehand with her what she would ask of Skykru and she had been convinced they would not accept like that.

Lexa looked down at the older woman with a slight glare on her face, her green eyes gleaming as they were still accentuated by her war paint. “Of course they did” she deadpanned obviously slightly offended at the question. In a tired gesture Lexa rubbed around her eyes, grimacing when she remembered the black pigment smudged around her eyes. With quick strides the commander vanished into the bathroom.

Marie’s face was scrunched up slightly, looking behind Lexa with a frown of her own. “Is Lexa angry with me?” the girl asked addressing Anya in a small voice, face showing the uneasiness she felt.

Anya regarded their charge for a moment with a contemplative expression. She had already heard that the sounds of Lexa washing up had faded, so she knew that the younger woman stood waiting to return into the room and probably already heard the girl’s question.

“No” she tried to reassure their charge, but something in her face must have belied her answer and Marie frowned at her.

“Why is she angry at me?” the girl rephrased her question, grey eyes worried and tinted with sadness. She could not remember what she might have done to upset the leader.

Anya sighed, highly uncomfortable with the whole situation. For a quick moment she contemplated calling Lexa out of the bathroom, so that she could deal with it herself, but she disregarded the idea again. If Lexa had wanted to speak with the girl, she would not remain within the bathroom now. “She is not angry with you, Marie” she reassured again and when the girl’s scowl deepened and she opened her mouth Anya silenced her “She is not!” she said more forcefully.

“Lexa has heard you telling me…” Anya stopped for a moment and took a deep breath “…that you love me”.

Marie furrowed her brow and slightly cocked her head to the side in confusion “So?” she asked and when Anya did not answer immediately, her face flashed with worry “Am I not allowed to say that? Is that wrong?”

Anya quickly shook her head, searching for words for a moment; she had never been required to talk about feelings like this. “You are allowed to say it, if you wish to, Marie. There is nothing wrong with it” she answered, shooting a fleeting glare at the bathroom, where Lexa still hid herself.

“Did Lexa not tell you, that she loves you?” the girl questioned innocently, her brow still furrowed trying almost desperately to understand.

Anya immediately shook her head with a sigh “No, Marie, she did not”.

Marie blinked at her obviously surprised and her confusion mounting “But you said a first and a second are like family” her tone was almost accusingly now.

“Yes” Anya nodded, unsure how to explain to the girl that the relationship they shared was different from a normal relationship between a mentor and their second.

“But you love your family” the girl said slightly shaking her head. Marie was still thinking hard if she had somehow overstepped and searching for a reason why Anya would not tell her. “Did you not love Lexa and Tris?” Marie asked her grey eyes staring intently at Anya.

“In a way, I suppose I did” Anya relented after a moment of heavy silence “But it is not customary to express it as such”.

Marie furrowed her brow again crossing her arms over chest and winced when she bend the arm with the cannula still in it and her voice had a petulant note to it “So I am not supposed to say it?”

Anya pinched the bridge of her nose in silent annoyance repeating her assurance that the girl was welcome to voice her feelings if she desired to do so.

Marie nodded with a contemplative expression and looked to the bathroom shortly before her gaze rested on Anya’s face again and her grey eyes were insecure again “Am I allowed to say it to Lexa?” For some reason Marie feared that voicing the same sentiment to the commander was off limits, although she was sure of her own feelings.

Anya had a startled look on her face at the unexpected question and she raised a brow at the girl voice cautious “So you wish to say the same to Lexa?” She did not know why she felt a slight surge of uneasiness at the prospect or why she internally questioned the weight of the girl’s words if Marie wanted to voice them to her former second as well.

“I love both of you” the girl retorted easily shrugging her shoulders slightly and intently stared at Anya when she noticed that her expression had closed off slightly.

“If you are both my firsts, I can love both of you the same” Marie tried to reason with her mentor “All three of us are family then after all”. Her grey eyes had a challenging glint to them as she spoke and the conviction in her belief was obvious in her tone.

“I suppose we are” Anya answered vaguely looking at the door to the bathroom again and wondering internally what Lexa was thinking right now.

 

 

Chapter 13: Chapter 121 - 130

Chapter Text

Chapter 121

Anya regarded the girl sitting upright in the bed with a contemplative expression. Her grey eyes had been honest when she claimed to love both of them evenly. But the concept of sharing a love like that outside of a family of blood was rather uncommon among their people, so Anya had a rather hard time processing this new concept.

Lexa had went into the bathroom to clear her face off of the war paint and was internally debating on whether to ask Anya to return to her own assigned quarters again with Marie or to let the matter rest. Seeing both of them together sitting at her bed had the jealousy she had felt the previous night return with a full force. The commander did not even understand fully why she was so jealous of something she had been sure not to wish for. But in the privacy of her own thoughts she now had to admit that she obviously in fact did wish for someone to love her in this absolutely pure and honest way. On another hand the prospect of sending both of them from her quarters did leave a foul taste in her mouth and Lexa knew it was nothing she truly desired to do. She had become used to the girl’s presence in her quarters by now and she knew that her chambers would feel awfully quiet and empty now without her.

Her hand hovered above the handle to the door when Marie voiced her question, asking her former mentor why she was angry with their charge. Lexa frowned hidden behind the door still ajar and she let her hand sink from the handle, wanting to hear Anya’s response before she returned to them.

She could almost picture Anya’s unease without actually needing to see her face, the way she spoke conveyed clearly how uncomfortable the woman was having to hold this kind of conversation at all. Lexa could not remember ever having spoken to her former mentor about her own feelings like that.

A frown appeared on her face when Marie asked if she had ever told Anya to love her. She knew she had never voiced such a sentiment, but it had not been expected of her either. Lexa had never felt the need to put a name onto their relationship beside this of a mentor and a second. The young girl sounded absolutely convinced that she in fact did feel love for Anya. She knew she held the woman in a high personal regard, far beyond her loyal general, but was it love that she felt for the older woman?

She was even more surprised when Marie got Anya to agree that the woman had felt some sort of love for both her and Tris. Her former mentor had always taken good care of her, but love had never been a subject between them. Lexa had been sure that Anya would at least be proud of the woman and the leader she had grown up to be, but she had never guessed for something deeper beyond that.

Her green eyes widened slightly when she heard the girl say that she claimed to love both she and Anya equally. Lexa had been sure that their charge would not return the same sentiment to her, but now hearing her expressing that she in fact did wish to do so filled her with an unexpected feeling of warmth. The jealousy which had still simmered in her veins had vanished instantly. In a way the girl was correct, they now shared a familial connection between all three of them. A soft smile tugged at her lips which she was powerless to supress for the moment and she felt strangely giddy.

Lexa took a few deep breaths trying to calm her thoughts and reign in her emotions. She was aware that Anya would have long recognized that she had stayed inside the bathroom with the simple reason as to not have to be part of this conversation.

“Are you hungry?” Anya asked the girl after a moment when Marie still expectedly taxed the door to the bathroom with her grey eyes trying to distract the girl. Marie’s gaze returned to the general’s face immediately and she nodded. It was obvious in the girl’s expression that she still was not convinced of the fact that Lexa truly was not angry with her personally.

Anya smiled gently at the girl and stood from the chair striding over to the table and returned to the bed with food for both of them in her hands.

Marie accepted a plate of food from the woman’s hands and watched with a frown how Anya tried to command Risha from the commander’s bed. But it was obvious the cub was not impressed with the general slightly tilting her head to the side at the unknown command. Anya huffed at the cub and physically pulled her from the bed and setting the animal down beneath the bed all the while repeating the command. Marie giggled slightly at the sight and stifled her giggles with a cough when Anya glared at her with strict eyes.

Lexa chose this moment to return into the room and Anya noted on the softness in the commander’s green eyes. Marie immediately looked up when she heard Lexa’s steps on the floor and her gaze was insecure, obviously still expecting Lexa to be angry and the girl looked down again the very moment their eyes connected. Lexa frowned lightly at the girl’s reaction. She had slightly doubted the girl’s confession to love both of them equally, but her reaction now backed up her previous words.

The commander sat down on the edge of the bed staring at their charge in silence for a moment and shortly glanced over at Anya. The older woman’s discomfort at the conversation she had just had still visible in her features. But she found an understanding in the brown eyes of her former mentor that made her wonder how the blonde girl had managed to have both of them rethink their own connection. Lexa had always been aware that Anya would be loyal beyond her duty as a general to her as the commander but she recognized now that it had always been so much more.

Softly Lexa tilted the girl’s chin up so that their eyes met and said in a gentle tone “I am not angry with you, Marie”.

“You heard?” the girl’s voice was surprised and a blush suddenly covered her pale cheeks.

“Yes, I have” Lexa answered in the affirmative a gentle light in her green eyes amused by the obvious shyness in their charge now.

Marie’s grey eyes suddenly had a defiant spark to them and her voice was firmer again as she said “So, I love you as well” crossing her arms over her chest in a petulant gesture. Her eyes seemed to challenge the commander as if to say “what are you going to do against it?”

Lexa let her hand fall from the girl’s chin and a smile tilted the corners of her mouth up into a bright smile “So do we” she retorted seriously.

Marie’s expression at these words was a comical mixture of surprise and awe. It had not passed Anya’s attention that she had been included in the statement but she was silently thankful for Lexa’s thoughtfulness. “You do?” she echoed voice small and insecure as grey eyes flitted between them intently.

Both of them nodded with honest expressions. Lexa and Anya both would have probably never put a label to their connection like that but it was obvious that the girl for some reason seemed to need exactly that from them.

On a sudden urge Marie sat up in the bed throwing her arms around Lexa’s neck and hugging the commander, as Anya was too far away to do the same. The general watched the thin plastic tube still connected to her arm stretch momentarily but Marie ignored the obvious tug on the cannula. Her grey eyes connected with Anya’s brown ones over Lexa’s shoulders and they were shining in a swirl of emotions.

Lexa tightened her arms once around the girl’s smaller form and then retreated out of her embrace pushing a plate with food into her hands instead.

Anya noted with silent satisfaction that the tension seemed to have drained completely out of Lexa’s face now that the situation between them was settled again as she took up a plate for herself.

“How does an initiation of a clan into the coalition work?” Marie spoke up after a few minutes of companionable silence.

“A representative of the clan will receive the coalition’s branding and they pledge their clan to the coalition, to abide our laws in front of the other ambassadors and they must appoint an ambassador staying behind in the capitol to represent their people” Lexa explained to their charge.

Marie’s brows furrowed “A brand?” her voice was confused. After the commander nodded her affirmation, a frown settled on her young features. “That is a weird way to settle something” the girl said after a moment.

“Why?” Lexa questioned curiously. Taking a brand or a special tattoo had been common practise among their people for a long time.

“You brand cattle” the girl retorted still frowning “Or cattle was branded before, to show ownership”. She had been born into Farm Station, so Marie knew still some concepts of agriculture of the old world.

“How would you register something then?” Anya asked the next question.

Marie blinked at her a few moments before she answered “With a written contract, I guess”.

Lexa nodded “But written words means little in a world, where most of the people are unable to read. A brand, a scar or a tattoo are visible and understandable without further explanation”.

Marie tilted her head slightly, obviously thinking about the woman’s words for a few moments before she nodded “That makes sense” she commented and her tone had lost the slightly judging undercurrent.

Anya put her plate onto the table and stood up shrugging on the warmer coat as she did so. The general had scheduled another training session with her warriors for the afternoon and now that Lexa was back into her chambers and not expected at another meeting until the next morning, she could leave the girl’s bedside. She smiled slightly at Marie and nodded to Lexa before she left the room, taking Risha outside as well as the cub had spent most of the day inside as well.

“Can Clarke take out the cannula?” Marie asked a few moments fiddling with the plastic tube still connected to the IV bag; the thing was starting to annoy her and she wanted it out.

“I will have her summoned here” Lexa promised and stood up, striding through her chambers and tasked a guard to summon the blonde leader to the commander’s quarters as soon as possible.

It took only a few moments until Clarke appeared. Marie had already finished eating and had started to continue reading in the commander’s journal, while Lexa had taken up to write into her own journal.

The commander barely looked up from her journal when she asked “Can you take out the cannula?”

Clarke frowned slightly at the other woman, although Lexa did not see it of course, and strode over to the bed and quickly removed the cannula from Marie’s arm. She disinfected the prick of the needle and took a listen to Marie’s lungs again, being satisfied with the improvements. The girl’s fever had fallen completely again and her grey eyes were clear and alert. If she had not seen the severe effect of the sickness only a few hours ago in the girl with her own eyes, Clarke would not have believed that she had been sick at all.

Lexa had closed her journal when Clarke finished the short examination and silently waited for the other woman’s report on Marie’s condition. Marie gingerly bent her arm, happy to notice the absence of the annoying pressure in her arm where the cannula had been.

“She seem totally fine again” Clarke said her face still contorted into a confused frown and her blue eyes hefted on Marie.

“So she can leave the bed again?” Lexa questioned calling her attention from their charge.

Clarke nodded although her expression still showed that she did not really understand the suddenness of Marie’s recovery.

“Have your people decided on who will function as their ambassador?” the commander questioned the other leader with a serious voice.

Clarke looked away from Marie meeting Lexa’s intense green eyes gaze “I thought that I might do it” she said surprising the other woman with her words.

The commander raised a sceptical brow at the blonde remembering her words not to want to be involved in politics anymore.

Clarke sighed audibly “That would at least give a reason to me staying here”. Her tone made it obvious that she did not really wish to be acting in this position.

Lexa regarded her silently for a moment before she said “You do not need a reason to be here”.

Clarke’s gaze was thankful for a second but it morphed into a sort of frustrated exhaustion “For my mother, I do. And I actually do not know who would be willing to do it otherwise.”

Lexa furrowed her brow. The clan’s usually decided themselves who would represent them so she had never been involved in an appointment of an ambassador, but she doubted taking up the position would be something the blonde woman would enjoy, it was obvious her heart was called to healing others at the moment.

Although Marie had opened the journal of the first commander again it was obvious to Lexa that the girl was following their conversation rather than reading. Having Skykru represented by Wanheda could either be favourable for her or quite the opposite, so as the commander Lexa was not sure having Clarke in that role would be desirable.

“We will only need to name someone tomorrow?” Clarke checked after a moment of silence, brows furrowed in obvious deep contemplation.

The commander nodded “Skykru will receive the ones back who passed their rites of redemption and afterwards the initiation will take place”.

Clarke nodded and when something seemed to cross her mind, her blue eyes flashed angrily and she clenched her jaw and almost seethed “When will I be required to kneel to you, commander?”

Her title had a mocking note to it and all inclination to let the matter rest left Lexa’s mind, she had contemplated not actually calling Clarke back on that, but now she steeled her eyes and stared the younger woman down with unyielding eyes. Something about Clarke’s attitude sat her on edge and her voice was hard as she said “Before Skykru receives the brand”.

Marie blinked at the commander with a furrowed brow. She did not understand why both of them were suddenly acting so strangely around each other. She knew that Clarke seemed still slightly angry about Lexa’s decision to call the army to surrender at the Mountain, but this conflict seemed to run deeper between them and was probably more on a personal level.

They were both staring at each other with angrily blazing eyes and the tension was almost palpable between them.

Clarke jerked her head in a sudden nod, grinding her teeth together forcefully. The blonde kept the words in check she had wanted to hurl at the other woman and just left the commander’s chambers without another word in a huff.

Marie blinked behind Clarke’s retreating form until the doors were pulled closed behind her and her heavy footfalls slowly faded through the corridor. Lexa was breathing rather heavily, trying to calm the sudden rage she felt. Marie shortly contemplated asking Lexa what this was really about, but the commander strode through the room and went into the bathroom, pushing the door closed forcefully with a resonating clang. She would try to ask Anya later what was wrong between Lexa and Clarke. Silently she resumed reading the journal and lost herself in the pages quickly.

Marie was startled sometime later when Anya returned into the commander’s quarters, glancing to the window of the room she frowned, it was already starting to turn dark outside and she had not noticed how the time had passed. Risha followed on the general’s heels and immediately jumped up on the bed, snuggling up to her human.

Marie squealed shrilly at the feeling, the cub’s fur was totally soaked through. “Uuuhhh, Risha, get down!” she screeched loudly and pushed the wolf in the direction of the floor. The wolf’s ice blue eyes taxed her for a second almost as if the animal was trying to decipher her words. “You are wet” she complained to the cub bending over to give her another gentle shove.

Anya watched the scene with thinned lips and annoyance clear on her face. The wolf cub had accompanied her to the training fields and warriors had freed some of the space from the snow, shovelling it to piles on the side. Risha had taken to jumping directly into them, getting soaked completely in the process. As she made to stride over to the bed and forcefully remove the wet animal from the bed, Risha followed Marie’s prompting and jumped down from the bed.

The wolf seemed to almost be sulking and left the bed with a raised head and not a single glance back. Risha padded over to the fire place and lied down there curled up in a ball.

Lexa sat cross legged at the end of the bed obviously still deep in mediation and her breathing was still even and eyes closed. Marie had no idea when she had returned from the bathroom or how long Anya might have been gone.

When Marie spotted blood on Anya’s armour she asked worriedly “Are you hurt?”

Anya turned to their charge who had sat up in the bed and was looking at her with compassionate eyes and she shook her head in reassurance “It is not mine, Marie”.

Although the girl nodded her eyes did not leave the general’s form as she stripped out of her armour and back into more comfortable clothes. “What has Clarke said?” Anya asked when she was finished and stepped over to Marie and noticed the absence of the cannula from her arm.

“I am fine again” Marie proclaimed with a smile, obviously relieved at the prospect to be allowed out of bed again “I don’t have to stay in the bed longer, I can resume training” her voice was enthusiastic at the last part.

Lexa had just opened her eyes when Marie and Anya had started talking and disturbed her concentration. “And you will” she commented, standing up from the floor “You will have lost almost all stamina again”.

Marie’s enthusiasm was obviously dampened by that declaration and she nodded with a slight sulk on her features.

“You will improve soon enough” Anya assured also she internally was less than pleased at the situation as well, but being annoyed by it would not help the girl to improve faster.

“What does an ambassador need?” Marie asked changing the topic rapidly.

“Need?” Anya echoed with a furrowed brow, unsure what the girl actually wanted to know right now.

“Yeah, what does an ambassador need to be like?” the girl elaborated quickly.

“You mean the Skykru ambassador?” Lexa checked, guessing what Marie was thinking about. At their charges quick nod, Lexa explained “It is the decision of Skykru who will represent them. But it should be someone who is at least willing to accept our culture. Someone for example with Pike’s mind-set would do more harm than good.”

Marie nodded with a contemplative expression “So someone not hot-headed?”

The commander nodded in affirmation.

“Monty might do it” Marie suddenly suggested and both Lexa and Anya looked at her in silent question. Anya thought that the name rang a bell in her mind, but she was unable to bring forth a face at the moment.

“He is not hot-headed and he was rather open still to our culture” Marie reasoned and both of them noted on the usage of the word “our” in the girl’s sentence, confirming their charge’s feeling of belonging to them once again.

“You met him already” Marie addressed Anya and reminded her of the rescue of the Farm Station survivors and how Monty had asked after her at the fire in the temporary camp when she had been upset. “He is compassionate” she finished her reasoning.

Lexa had listened intently to the girl’s list of arguments and nodded “It is still Skykru’s choice who will remain in the capitol, but I will suggest him for the position than”

Marie smiled happily at the woman, being glad to contribute something which might be slightly helpful at least.

 

 

Chapter 122

The night went over peacefully and Marie slept better than she had in weeks, cuddled up to Lexa almost the whole night. Marie was awoken before dawn when Lexa slipped out of the bed beside her. She stretched leisurely under the furs content to remain under their comfortable warmth for another moment.

But Anya also left the bed on the other side. The general remained standing beside the bed for a moment “How do you feel?” she inquired and bent over the girl’s form gently placing a hand on forehead to check her temperature.

“Good” Marie answered easily and sat up aware that she would probably now be required to accompany the commander and Anya to the meeting with Skykru. That was the first thing scheduled for the morning, for Skykru to receive their prisoners back. “Will they all survive?” Marie asked in a voice that clearly said that she was slightly afraid of the honest answer.

“You mean the ones who passed the rites?” Anya checked and offered a hand to Marie to pull her from the bed. When the girl nodded in the affirmative she explained “With Skykru medicine I am sure, they will make it. With our healers it always varies.”

Lexa returned from the bathroom a few moments later with her hair down, falling around her back in soft waves. The commander nodded to Anya and softly smiled at Marie in greeting and waited for Alira to arrive with their breakfast. Anya sent Marie into the bathroom in the meantime to wash herself for the day and Marie was pleased not to feel any dizziness at all when she stood from the bed.

After they had consumed a quick breakfast, during which Alira had first done Lexa’s hair and afterwards wound Marie’s hair into intricate braids together with a few pieces of red cloth, Marie followed the commander and Anya to the throne room. The Skykru delegation was already waiting for their arrival. Marie also spotted Indra, Lincoln and Octavia in the back of the room. Octavia had probably insisted to be there to immediately see her brother.

The atmosphere was rather tense and it was obvious that the members of Skykru were on edge. Clarke had joined her people and her blue eyes still sparked almost defiantly at the commander when their eyes met.

“Blood has answered blood, like it is due to and with the recipience of your people, we lay our discrepancies to rest” the commander addressed the Skykru delegation in a calm tone and she nodded to Markus in particular, regarding him now already as the leader of Skykru. The man had a rather forced looking smile on his face, but his eyes were still honest in their kindness as he inclined his head in silent thanks.

Guards were sent into the dungeons to retrieve the prisoners who would now be released back to their people.  The wait for the guards to return was tense as well and every one of the Skykru representatives seemed to strain their hearing for the first footfalls from the corridor.

Marie stood patiently next to Anya and mutely scrutinized the other Skykru. They all seemed to be wearing a mixture of their own clothing from the Ark and a few fur lined pieces donated to them by the commander; the Ark’s population never had a need for winter clothes before and had been ill prepared for the cold season, now heavily relying on the aid given to them by Trikru.

When the sounds of footsteps finally did reach their ears the representatives of Skykru all seemed to hold their breath in anticipation. The commander sat on her throne totally relaxed in stark contrast, flanked by Gustus and Ryder. Marie had no idea what condition to expect the others to be in, she had never before witnessed a lashing and could not estimate how hard the effects would be on a body.

All four of the prisoners had to be braced by the guards and seemed to have great difficulties to walk at all, their faces contorted into grimaces of obvious pain. Zoe Monroe and the young man with dark hair and blue eyes were quiet obviously feverish, their skin pale and shimmering with a cold sweat. Abby sucked in an audible gasp at their conditions and did not wait for the commander to say anything else before she rushed over to Zoe Monroe.

Lexa subtly shook her head at the guards who were clearly uneasy with Abby’s impatient behaviour, letting it pass for now. She had even expected more problems with having them wait for a day to receive their people back, but either they had not tried to get to them or Skykru had started to understand that her word was to be obeyed in her lands if they did not wish to suffer the consequences. She had also expected some kind of disagreement over those that would be banned from the lands of the Kongeda and the commander was slightly surprised that they had not tried to convince her to change her verdict.

The commander shortly looked at all of the four culprits before she addressed them directly “You have lived through the rite of redemption and are now cleared of your sins, let this be a lesson to all of you”. She inclined her head to Markus and the man seemed to understand this as a sign that they were free to leave now. He quickly thanked her and the Skykru representatives all took over their four wounded people from the guards who stepped back to give them place.

Skykru’s initiation as the thirteenth clan would take place later in the day, giving them enough time to take care of their wounded and get ready for the ceremony, which would be closed with a small banquet.

Lexa had scheduled to meet with the novitiates in the meantime. Marie would accompany Anya to the training fields where the general had another training session with a few members of the commander’s private unit. Marie would have personally preferred to see the nightblood children with Lexa but Anya had planned to start at least a light training with their charge as well.

Marie followed Anya through the tower obediently looking out through the windows she could spot. It had stopped snowing a few days ago but there was still a lot of snow outside as far as she could tell. They had shortly returned to their quarters to collect Risha, so that the cub could get outside as well for some time and were now outside on the way through the streets to the training pits.

Marie watched with a smile on her features how Risha seemed to search for the snow piles next to the streets, which had by now been mostly cleared of the snow, and enthusiastically jumped into the snow, disappearing beneath the white layer momentarily only to jump out a moment later. It was obvious the small animal was having a blast and Marie giggled lowly at the sight.

Anya watched the small animal’s antics with thinned lips; Risha’s fur was already covered in small lumps of snow. She quickly guided their charge to the training pits and they could already hear the clash of steel against each other from others already training in combat.

Marie did not recognize anyone of the warriors who were already on the training pits. They all seemed to pause slightly when they saw Anya approaching and nodded to her respectfully, but Marie still noticed how their eyes rested on herself for a moment before Anya motioned to them to resume their training.

Marie grimaced lightly when Anya commanded her to make a few rounds around the pits to warm up her muscles. After only a rather short amount of time she was totally out of breath already and Anya called her to a stop immediately when she started to cough again forcefully.

The general watched Marie gathering her breath with a worried frown, question their decision to start the girl’s training internally. Her frown deepened when she spotted Titus approaching the training pits with Ontari in tow. It was uncommon for a nightblood to be trained in the normal training pits, their training usually taking place in more secluded areas, diminishing the chances of assassination attempts at least slightly.

The dark haired girl was obviously rather displeased as well judging by her petulant expression. Marie had stepped up to Anya breathing heavily and waiting for it to calm slightly again and also spotted Titus with Ontari.

The bald man shortly nodded to Anya and immediately took up two weapons, throwing one at Ontari. The girl barely managed to catch it before it could smack her in the face.

Anya ordered Marie to remain at the side line with Risha. The general would be engaging in a training combat fight with a female warrior who had introduced herself as Echo. The woman had bright brown eyes and brown hair with lighter strands braided away from her face.

Marie watched Anya circle around Echo for a moment before they started fighting. It was clear quickly that Echo was a very well versed fighter as well and Marie was not sure if they might not have the same level of skills.

Her attention was called from watching Anya to observing Titus with Ontari every few minutes. The bald flamekeeper was engaged in combat with the girl and it was obvious he did not go easy on her even for a second. She could spot various places on the other girl’s brown armour already shining with dark blood and she winced in sympathy when Titus brought her on her back with a hit to her throat.

While Titus drank something and caught his breath, the man had Ontari continue training with another warrior, not giving the girl a single moment of rest. Marie watched the proceedings with a frown, sweat was dripping from Ontari’s face and her features were drawn in obvious exertion.

Anya noticed with an angry glint in her brown eyes that Marie had stopped watching her sparring match altogether. She stepped up to the girl and snapped her fingers in front of the girl’s face startling her strongly in the process. Marie looked up at Anya guiltily for a moment but her eyes were still drawn back around Anya to Ontari.

“Is he trying to have her killed?” the girl asked worry tinting her voice. Anya frowned at the girl’s obvious compassion for the Azgeda nightblood but she frowned slightly when she also turned and glanced at Ontari. It was obvious the girl was only keeping on fighting through pure will power now, probably on the brink of collapsing from exhaustion. Echo had only shortly glanced at Ontari, knowing the young nightblood personally and waiting for her in Polis to take up the mantle of the commander, but her light brown eyes were taxing the blonde Sky girl with a flash of confusion.

“Can’t you make him stop?” Marie almost pleaded to Anya, surprising both the general and Echo with her plea. Anya frowned down at the girl, interfering with the flamekeeper’s training would not have crossed her mind. She had also never done so when the man had trained Lexa in the past, she had only waited for the man to ease up and let the brunette girl and took care of her afterwards.

The way Echo was taxing her charge with an intense gaze did not sit right with Anya when she noticed it and she steered the girl over to a few targets, ignoring her mute pleas for now, and handed her a series of daggers to throw at the targets.

With satisfaction Anya noted that the girl’s aim had not gotten worse but her throws certainly lacked strength which would only be increased by repeated training. A few of the warriors who were taking a break in their own training right now had turned around and watched Marie. The surprise at seeing the girl’s obvious talent was obvious in the subtle widening of their eyes, when Marie did not miss any target even once.

The flamekeeper had also taken up watching the girl train only looking back to Ontari every few moments.

Anya faced the girl in hand combat afterwards, testing which movements their charge still remembered and which had become sloppy and needed correction. She did not fight with her with the intent to hurt her, so she carefully measured her own attacks only bringing the girl to her back without any real force.

As a last part of the training Anya handed Marie two short swords, similar to the blades Lexa used and Marie had shown talent with before. The girl carefully felt the balance of the blades and faced off Anya with both blades in a defensive position. It was obvious Marie felt much securer wielding the blades in comparison to simple hand combat.

In a real fight the girl would still not stand any chance against Anya but she did do better in comparison still. Titus’ face showed open surprise and even a sliver of recognition for the girl’s skill.

Marie received a nod of approval from Anya and smiled widely at the general. The woman handed the girl a cup with water to refresh a bit and Marie gratefully gulped down the cool liquid in one go and asked for a refill.

Anya resumed training with Echo for now and Marie stood at the side line watching but her attention mainly on Ontari training with another male warrior at the moment. When their fight ended Marie stepped up to Ontari with her refilled cup in hand and offered the cup with water mutely to the girl.

Ontari visibly startled, her dark eyes had been glittering angrily and were now widened in obvious surprise at the kind gesture. With a thankful nod she accepted the cup and drained it in one go “Thank you” she said voice careful.

Titus’ had watched Marie approach the nightblood and his eyes were narrowed in obvious anger at her interfering his training.

“You looked like you could need it” Marie commented with kind eyes twinkling slightly.

Ontari seemed to bristle slightly at the comment but she could not detect any judgement in the other girl’s young features. The girl did not seem to have any ulterior motive to offer her water than simply the wish to do so. Ontari quickly glanced at the Trikru general who had accompanied the girl to the training pit and at Titus, both of them seemed surprised and even slightly angry at Marie for the kind gesture; her dark eyes also found Echo, recognizing her as a part of the loyal guard to Nia, the woman’s light brown eyes were sharp and suspicious as their eyes met. Ontari had no idea why Echo was still residing in Polis, she would have thought that Nia would immediately call the assassin back to her.

“Marie” Anya addressed the girl sharply and calling the girl back to her. Marie shortly smiled at Ontari and obediently returned to the general’s side. She guided the girl away from the training pits back towards the tower, they had been outside for a long time already and she doubted the girl should totally exert herself at the moment. They had to hurry now to get ready for the ceremony, the commander would expect both of them to be present.

Lexa was already in her quarters when they entered, Alira bustling around the younger woman, dressing her in a multi layered dress.

“Is there bathing water left?” Anya asked immediately as she took off her warm coat. Marie watched Risha walk over to the fire place shaking some of the frozen pieces of snow from her fur before the cub laid down in front of the blazing fire.

She ushered the girl into the bathroom with a gentle shove “We are late” Anya explained to their charge while already getting out of her grimy training amour “We will bath together” she decided quickly and Marie shrugged out of her things as well, letting them fall to the floor carelessly.

Marie slipped into the bathing tube in front of Anya and the woman immediately took out the braids out of her hair, which had gotten messy during her training.

“Anya?” the girl asked after a moment voice slightly unsure.

“Mmh?” the general grunted back taking up a bar of soap and foaming some in her hands to distribute into the girl’s blonde locks.

“Why are you training me not like this?” Marie voiced her question slightly turning her upper body to take a glance at the woman.

Anya’s hands hovered above the girl’s head for a moment caught off guard by the question. “So you think I am not training you correctly?” she retorted slightly affronted.

“No” Marie quickly reassured but after a moment she frowned “Or, I don’t know”.

Anya huffed, annoyed with the fact that the Azgeda nightblood was obviously still at the forefront of their charge’s thoughts. “Titus had always had a different approach at training” she settled on finally after a moment of contemplation.

“But does he have to be like that?” Marie kept on inquiring voice curious while Anya started to clear the soap from the girl’s body and handed the bar of soap over to Marie’s hands so that she could wash her body.

“Not necessarily” Anya admitted and started wetting her own hair.

“Then he was trying to kill her” Marie concluded with an obvious pout and handed the soap back “Can I help you?” she asked in a soft tone, but Anya shook her head ordering the girl to get out and start to dry off. Re-doing the girl’s hair would take Alira a few minutes already.

Marie’s lips tilted down in obvious disappointment but she obeyed the woman’s orders and climbed out of the bathing tube, wrapping a towel around her frame.

When she turned around and spotted a bleeding gash on Anya’s back the girl padded over to the bathing tube and gently laid her fingers on the wound, calling her power forth in the blink of an eye.

Anya hissed slightly at the burning sensation of Marie’s healing powers knitting the skin back together and although she was thankful for the girl’s assistance it worried her that Marie started to use her power just like that. It would be easy for someone to walk in on them and notice her strange healing powers, revealing her talent in the process.

“You should not use it for simple wounds” the general admonished in a sharp tone and with strict eyes when she got out of the tube a few moments later.

Marie’s grey big eyes were surprised and a brow raised in silent question at the reprimand. She had only meant to help and take the wound away from her.

Anya’s brown eyes got slightly softer at the girl’s startled look “I know that you mean well, but the more often you use it, the higher the probability for someone else to notice”.

Marie nodded in understanding and let herself be guided back into the main room of the commander’s quarters. Alira had finished with Lexa’s hair and was waiting for the young girl while Anya could do her hair herself and Lexa was applying paint around her eyes.

Marie sat obediently still while Alira first combed her hair with a wide-toothed comb and then started pulling sections into tightly wound braids. She watched Lexa apply the paint around her eyes which again looked different from the war paint the commander usually wore around her green eyes.

“Titus is trying to kill Ontari” Marie insisted now to Lexa and Anya huffed in obvious annoyance at the girl’s stubbornness.

Lexa paused with the brush hovering in front of her face and turned to Marie with a frown on her face and glanced at Anya who shook her head with a subtle eye roll. “You have seen them train than?” the commander inquired with a kind tone.

Marie nodded and opened her mouth but Lexa silenced the girl with a quick raise of her hand “You do not have to agree with Titus’ training methods, Marie. But he would never harm a novitiate on purpose” her voice was laced with conviction and left no room for a further argument. Marie still did not look really convinced but if Lexa trusted the flamekeeper, she probably should as well.

 

 

 

Chapter 123

Marie dearly hoped that initiating Skykru into the coalition would not take long. Anya had hurried them that much, that they did not have a chance to eat anything and their last meal had been breakfast. The sun was already disappearing outside and Marie felt her stomach already growling slightly in obvious hunger.

The ambassadors of all the clans had already been waiting in the throne room and fell to their knees in respect when Lexa swept into the room. The commander’s form looked so much smaller without the heavy shoulder pauldron and clad into a tightly fitting dress instead.

After the lesson Lexa had held with the novitiates she had briefly met up with Clarke to recommend Monty as a possible ambassador if she did not wish to take up the position. The blonde leader had been openly surprised at the reasonable suggestion telling the commander that she would speak with him before the ceremony, as the boy had also come to Polis with the intent to say his farewell to his mother and watch her death. Lexa had not heard back from the blonde so she had no idea on what Skykru had decided.

The commander remained standing in front of her throne and motioned the ambassadors to stand up again with a gesture of her hand, subtly inclining her head in acknowledgement to them. She motioned to one of the guards stationed at the door to let the Skykru representatives enter.

When the doors were pulled open again the group of Skykru entered preceded by Markus Kane. It was obvious all of them had washed up and groomed. Marie spotted Monty among them, the Asian looking boy was obviously pale and his eyes looked slightly puffy as if he had cried and an image of Hannah tied to the pole came to the forefront of her mind with a painful tug, but Monty did not seem angry. He had probably understood that his mother had made the choice herself that had gotten her killed.

Marie watched the reaction of the other ambassadors to the arrival of the Skykru group and it was obvious that not all of them were pleased with the situation. The Azgeda representative sneered openly, while the ambassadors of the Rock Line, Desert Clan and Glowing Forrest were eying the group with suspicious eyes.

The doors were still opened and when the Skykru group had taken their place between the ambassadors gathered in a half circle around the upper part of the throne room, Clarke strode into the room. Marie blinked in surprise at the blonde girl. She had obviously been styled by a handmaiden and her long hair was braided in a series of complicated braids. Her blue eyes were highlighted with paint as well, making them stand out strongly. She had been dressed into a tight dress as well that even slightly resembled the dress Lexa was wearing. Clarke held her head high as she strode into the throne room with purposeful strides and her eyes were almost blazing when she met Lexa’s gaze.

The commander watched the blonde leader step directly in front of her throne and after what felt like a long and intense eye contact, but was probably only a few seconds, Clarke bent her knee, submitting publicly to the commander.

After a tense moment the first ambassador fell to his knees as well prompting the others to follow his example. Anya motioned Marie subtly to do the same and in the end everyone in the room was kneeling in front of the commander.

Lexa shortly looked over all of those gathered in the room, the Skykru delegation had been the last to fall to their knees. But as they were not aware of most of their customs yet, that had been expected. “Hail warriors of the twelve clans” she addressed all of them in a loud and clear tone.

“Hail commander of the blood” the ambassadors echoed still on their knees. Lexa could not stop herself from looking at the blonde leader kneeling in front of her. Clarke had always been beautiful but right at this moment she looked absolutely stunning and the very image of absolute power to Lexa.

“Rise” Lexa commanded after a long moment finally looking away from Clarke and all of them got to their feet again and Clarke slowly walked over to join the group from Skykru. “We welcome Skykru to our halls in the spirit of friendship and harmony, and we welcome Clarke from Skykru... Legendary Wanheda, Mountain Slayer. We are here at this summit to initiate Skykru into the coalition. To symbolize this union, the leader of Skykru must bare our mark”.

Lexa let her hard gaze sweep over the gathered ambassadors once, noting on those who seemed the most displeased, until her eyes turned to Markus Kane and the man stepped forward.

“Present your arm” the commander said calmly and watched Markus quickly role up the sleeve of the jacket he had been wearing and motioned to a guard to retrieve the heated metal rod with the branding. Markus groaned audibly when the red gleaming metal was pressed to his arm briefly and Marie turned a shade paler at the stench of burning flesh instantly wafting through the room.

Marie just now spotted Roan with the Ice Nation ambassador and softly smiled at the man when he looked her way and although his face remained impassive his blue eyes flashed with recognition when they met.

“Skykru will be required to leave an ambassador of their own in the capitol” the commander said once Markus had returned to his people “Who have you decided on?” she asked voice calm and strong.

Monty stepped forward slightly and inclined his head “I am going to be the ambassador of my people”. The boy tried to stand proudly against the scrutinizing gazes of the other ambassadors. Monty was slightly young to act in such a position, but Lexa actually preferred him in comparison to most of the older people of the Ark she had made contact with. Accommodations would be made permanently for the boy and the commander would hold a private audience with him to tell him what would be expected of him, as she doubted any of his people would be able to offer any help in that regard.

“To celebrate our new union, we are going to share our table at a banquet now” Lexa proclaimed after she had nodded to the boy and the ambassadors shortly nodded to their leader, before the first ones already left the throne room to go to the room feasts were usually taking place.

The banquet with Skykru and the other clans did go over without any bigger incidents. It was obvious that the clans were still extremely uneasy around the Skykru delegation and Monty would not have an easy start to hold his ground in the meetings with the other ambassadors.

The only ones really willing to sit next to Skykru were Octavia, Lincoln and Indra. Bellamy and the others who had just been released to them in the morning did not attend the banquet but had obviously stayed in their quarters to rest; the whole delegation would probably be leaving Polis on the next day.

A few brave and obviously curious members of the Desert Clan and the Boat People were the only ones who tried speaking with any of Skykru.

Marie watched from her place between Anya and the commander how a few clans seemed to only speak with each other and small groups seemed to have formed in the vast room. Although Anya had not had her train hard in the morning, she could still already feel the heaviness in her muscles and in a few places she was sure that bruises were already blooming on her skin.

Both Lexa and Anya were occupied with keeping watchful eyes over all those in the room, taking silent note on who spoke with who. Marie sat between them feeling slightly bored, after she had finished eating her fill there was nothing for her to do anymore.

Marie spotted Echo speaking with Roan at the table of the Ice Nation delegation and she wondered if they had known each other already. She wondered how the Ice queen would look like and she remembered that the woman had been summoned before the ambassadors by Lexa. If she had planned for Ontari to replace Lexa as the commander she doubted the queen would be pleased to hear that her plans had obviously failed.

“Lexa?” the girl addressed the commander lowly and the woman inclined her head slightly as a silent indication that she was listening to her. “Has queen Nia not been summoned to Polis?” Marie kept her voice low hoping that only Lexa and Anya would be able to hear her.

Lexa furrowed her brow silently surprised that the girl was asking after something like that now or rather at all. This was nothing they should be discussing in front of all the ambassadors anyway so the commander just said “Yes, she was” her voice ringing with a finality that put an end on the girl’s inquiry for now.

Marie shortly glanced up at Anya but the general subtly shook her head at her and the girl sighed under her breath and looked back over the crowd in the huge room.

When Roan caught the commander’s second looking over to him a few times, he let the corners of his mouth pull up into a slight smile and inclined his head to her in acknowledgment. The girl was still much more expressive and openly smiled back at him which did not go unnoticed by the commander and her general and even Echo, still standing beside him furrowed her brow. “You have met her?” the prince inquired lowly following Echo’s light brown eyes.

The Ice Nation assassin had subtly tried to inquire if he knew any new orders from his mother and he had to tread carefully around her, unsure who her loyalties really belonged to. “I have” Echo commented in an even tone but it was obvious that the blonde girl had somehow surprised the woman.

“She seems quiet special in her ways” Roan retorted his blue eyes switching between Echo and the commander’s second. The girl had obviously said something and judging from her expression it had been a complaint of some sorts and both women sitting next to her lightly glared down at the girl, making her almost shrink in her place.

Echo’s light brown eyes were hard when she looked away from the girl “She is soft” her voice was tinted with slight resentment “She offered water to Ontari. They must keep her isolated”. She had expected Ontari to make a move already and was astounded to see her training with the flamekeeper.

Roan looked around themselves with watchful eyes, it was almost careless of the assassin to speak about their nightblood in front of others who might be listening. But no one actually seemed to pay them any mind, it seemed the Skykru delegation was way more interesting at the moment. Showing a kind gesture to someone sounded absolutely like something the girl would do, but he did not doubt that there was a strength in the girl not easily spottable on the first glance. It was undeniable that the girl was different from the children born on earth but he was convinced that did not have to be a disadvantage. That the assassin had come to see him at all clearly indicated that she was waiting for orders from his mother and maybe unsure on how to proceed. 

Marie was relieved when Lexa finally stood from her chair efficiently ending the gathering with her retreat. Anya motioned her to follow the commander and Marie grimaced lightly at the slight pain she could already feel in her muscles after sitting straight in the chair for what felt like endless hours.

“We shall have to work on your patience” Lexa remarked when they entered the elevator to return to the commander’s quarters.

The girl looked up at the woman with a slightly guilty expression and Anya’s face also showed her displeasure at their charge’s behaviour during the banquet.

“Just sitting there was boring” Marie justified herself sullenly with a pout on her lips. But Lexa also noted on the tiredness on the girl’s features; she had just gotten better from her illness and the day had been rather long.

The general pinched the bridge of her nose in annoyance. She remembered vividly Lexa complaining about having to stand in on meetings such as these as well, but even as a child the future commander had been able to wait calmly as long as possible, something Marie obviously still needed to learn. When Anya made to open her mouth intent on reprimanding the girl as well, the commander subtly silenced her. They could speak with the girl once she had rested.

Now that the situation with Skykru had been dissolved and with the cold season upon them Lexa predicted that things would calm down at least until spring. The upcoming weeks would offer enough time for Marie to truly settle into Polis and her role in the capitol.

Marie was almost happy when they reached the commander’s quarters to be told by Anya to go into the bathroom and get ready to go straight to bed.

When she returned from the bathroom now dressed into a pair of wide soft trousers and a lose shirt, Lexa sat in front of a mirror washing off the paint around her eyes and Anya went into the bathroom next. The commander had already changed out of the dress and loosened her hair for the night.

Risha waited in the middle of the bed for her human wagging her tail at the girl and liking her fingers in greeting.

“Lexa” Marie addressed the commander in an insecure tone.

Lexa turned around slightly facing Marie and raising a brow at the girl in silent question, it was obvious from her whole pose that something was on her mind.

The girl stepped away from the bed and over to the commander, her grey eyes guilty “I did not mean to misbehave and reflect badly on you” the girl’s tone was slightly quivering. While washing up Marie had thought about why both of her mentors had reacted so strongly to her complaining about being bored and she realized that someone might have overheard and how both Lexa and Anya always seemed so stoic.

Lexa sighed mutely, fully turning to face the girl and her green eyes were soft as she said “We know, Marie. You are a child still and unused to the requirements of the position you now have here. You will get used to keeping up a façade soon enough”. The last part was meant as a reassurance and she smiled faintly at the girl, squeezing her shoulder as she did so. Lexa was reminded once again how delicate their charge truly was; she doubted another second would have paid any mind to a mild reprimand like that.

“What happens now that Skykru is in the coalition?” Marie asked after a silent moment of just meeting her gaze.

“The clans will need to get used to deal with Skykru” Lexa answered “I do not expect them to be open to any invention they might offer yet. Change like that takes time”.

Marie nodded in understanding. The words actually made sense to her, but she hoped that nothing would happen that could prompt another war.

“You can accompany me tomorrow to a training with nightbloods” Lexa offered after a moment of internal contemplation. The commander doubted that training the girl daily right from the start would work really well and that she probably needed some more time to get used to physical exertion again.

Marie nodded her grey eyes immediately shining enthusiastically at the prospect. She liked spending time with the nightblood children. With a frown on her face she said “Will Ontari also train with them?” Marie did not know that Ontari was still kept totally separated from the rest of the conclave.

Lexa sighed slightly not yet assured that the Ice Nation nightblood would not try something if offered a chance.

Now that the threat with Skykru was cleared Azgeda would probably make itself known quickly. The commander hoped that she could finally erase Nia once and for all. Roan would probably make a better king for the large clan and if she had an active hand in putting him onto the throne, the man would be pledged to be at least slightly loyal to the coalition. She hoped that Nia would truly wait until the snow melted to make her next move. That would offer her enough time to hopefully settle the other clans and secure the coalition.

“We shall see about Ontari” Lexa said after a few minutes of silent contemplation, still feeling the girl’s grey eyes taxing her intently. She knew that keeping the nightblood isolated forever from the rest of the conclave was not a feasible practise as well. Having the children brought together under supervision and heavy guard was probably the best they could do.

Marie nodded obviously satisfied with the vague answer for now. When Anya stepped out of the bathroom Marie immediately turned around to face the general watching her face to judge her mood, checking if the other woman might be angry at her. In her mind it did not automatically mean that Anya would not be angry at her behaviour just because Lexa had not been. 

But Anya only looked perplexed at the girl’s intent stare and her brown eyes had lost their annoyance for now. Anya shortly glanced at Lexa with a raised brow mutely inquiring what this was about, but Lexa only shook her head subtly and said in a calm tone “Go to bed, Marie”.

Marie nodded instantly and settled into the middle of the bed. Both of them had gotten used to having the girl switching between cuddling to one of them during the night and letting her fall asleep in the middle was the most practical thing. Risha usually settled at the girl’s feet. The girl was still moving around the bed way too much for the cub to be able to sleep anywhere else.

 

Chapter 124

Marie grumbled under her breath when Anya shook her awake and the sun had not even risen fully yet. The girl stretched under the furs with a huff not really willing to stand up just yet as it was totally comfortable in the bed.

Anya thinned her lips glaring down at the girl and with one sharp tug the general had pried the furs covering Marie’s body away from her.

The girl let out an indignant squeak and immediately sat up in the bed frowning up at her mentor with a pout on her lips “Can’t I sleep longer?”

Anya rolled her eyes in slight annoyance and shook her head mutely pointing already at the bathroom and with an audible sigh Marie crawled from the bed and went into the bathroom.

“She is getting more comfortable” Lexa commented in an even tone not looking up from the scroll she was studying intensely. The commander had risen from her bed some time ago and was leaning over reports from the Desert Clan trying to decipher the messy writing for what felt like hours already.

Anya only grunted absent-minded while she was in the process of inspecting her sword and gauging if she had sharpened it enough. They had already let the girl sleep way longer than both of them had but the Skykru delegation was supposed to leave at first light and they would be seeing them off. “She needs a firmer routine” the general finally said, satisfied with the condition of her sword once again “If we ever want her to improve in training”.

Lexa nodded putting aside the scrolls for now; she direly needed to remind the ambassadors to take care that only people who truly had writing skills were tasked with writing reports to the capitol. “Now that everything should have calmed until the snow melts that should not be a problem” the commander answered. But now that Marie was finally better they would truly need to start training her in earnest or she would never improve.

When Marie returned from the bathroom the girl yawned wholeheartedly and glanced out of the window with a sullen expression “Why are we up already?” she asked in a slightly accusing tone.

“Skykru leaves at first light” Lexa said as a short explanation ignoring the girl’s obvious mood altogether.

“What does that have to do with me?” Marie questioned sitting down on one of the couches and Risha who had previously slept next to Lexa, immediately leapt over to her human.

“Have you forgotten, that you will be accompanying either of us until we can trust you again, now that your bedrest is over?” Anya tossed in her brown eyes strict and an eyebrow raised slightly in question.

Marie had already opened her mouth to say something but closed it with an audible snap, her shoulders sagging visibly as she shook her head mutely. Lexa internally wondered if their charge had already forgotten about her still open punishment.

Breakfast was a silent and quick affair and Marie still did not understand why the departure of the Skykru delegation required their presence at all. The group had arrived in a rover and seeing them off was not spectacular at all.

Abby was obviously still actively trying to persuade Clarke to accompany them back to Arkadia. But the blonde young woman was steadfast in her opinion and was not to be swayed; her blue eyes were determined and their discussion became louder with every retort.

The commander watched the heated exchange between mother and daughter with the inner urge to step in and simply order Clarke to stay in the capitol and by thus making Abby’s efforts null. But it had been plainly obvious in the short exchange of glances they had that some of Clarke’s anger had resurfaced and her blue eyes had sparked heatedly, surprising the commander with the intense emotion.

Kane was the one who finally reasoned with Abby that Clarke staying behind in the capitol and working with the resident healers could only be a good thing if they ever wished to truly start trading knowledge with the other clans. So the woman conceded aware that if she did not physically force Clarke from Polis there was no way her daughter would accompany them. 

The ones who had been subjected to the lashings to be cleared of their sins seemed to do slightly better already and were able to walk on their own; although all of them wore identical pained grimaces.

Octavia was visibly absent from the group to see the Skykru delegation leave. Bellamy’s shoulders seemed to drop in resignation and he addressed Clarke in an almost pleading tone “Tell her that I am sorry, alright? And that I wish to be there for their bonding”. The blonde nodded and carefully enveloped Bellamy before Kane helped him into the rover.

The new leader from Skykru officially once again thanked the commander before saying his goodbyes and he smiled slightly at Marie in silent recognition.

Lexa and Anya both breathed slightly easier when the loud roaring of the rover had faded and the Skykru delegation had truly left Polis.

The general steered Marie in the direction of the training pits after the guards took up their normal posts again. When the girl immediately inquired after the lesson with the nightblood children Lexa had promised to take her to, the commander said that she would meet them later and she parted ways with them returning to the tower for now.

Anya set a faster pace for their charge’s training this time and it was obvious she was pushing the girl to her limits pretty quickly. Marie had great difficulties with moving over the snowy ground without stumbling in the tempo the general demanded of her.

Before Anya had only let her run normal rounds but now Marie understood the purpose of a few weird contraptions functioning as obstacles.

Marie was completely out of breath and felt her heart beating extremely rapidly against her burning chest. The ice cold air burned in her lungs and breathing felt totally uncomfortable. Anya had taken her coat from her and in the beginning Marie had shivered with the cold but now she felt heated and a few strands of her blond hair were slicked to her face.

“Combat training” Anya suddenly called out, stopping Marie in her fast rounds. The girl came to a skidding halt next to her, her hands pressed to her chest and her face contorted into a grimace.

Marie had a bloody graze on her pale face where she had failed a climbing obstacle the first time and scratched the side of her head oddly falling from the thing. She noticed a few warriors also training on the training pits now, when they had arrived the pits had been deserted still. Among them Marie recognized Echo, the woman Anya had trained with yesterday and she immediately felt her light brown eyes follow her very move.

“Why is she watching me like that?” Marie asked Anya in a breathless whisper looking right back at the Azgeda assassin.

The general followed their charge’s grey eyes and her brown eyes narrowed slightly at the open interest in Echo’s gaze. Anya had originally thought that all the warriors were bound to be watching the girl train, like everyone in TonDC had been interested in the commander’s second’s training, but most of the others were focused on their own training barely sparing the both of them more than a quick glance. Mutely Anya motioned Marie to square off in her standard combat stance ignoring the Azgeda woman for now, but in the back of her mind Anya also kept a watchful eye on her, still being wary of the woman’s motives for staying in the capitol in the first place.

Marie had thought that the soft snow might be able to cushion at least some force when Anya brought her to her back rapidly, but the snow had long been compressed into a sturdy layer now as hard as concrete. She felt as if she had forgotten most of the combat techniques and Anya was criticizing her non-stop on every little detail she did wrongly.

She had a busted lip and a bruise forming on her cheekbone when Anya finally called an end to the training session and Marie breathed out a heavy sigh of relieve. The girl knew without a doubt that she would probably barely be able to move the next day as her muscles already felt heavy and stiff in various places in her body.

Anya’s expression was hard to decipher for Marie right now so she had no idea if her mentor was satisfied with her effort or if she had failed at training in her eyes.

The general brought Marie to the commander’s quarters on the direct way where lunch was already waiting for them. Only two plates had been served so Lexa either had already eaten or would eat in the throne room.

Marie felt her stomach rumbling with hunger from the exhaustion of the long and her training and immediately started to dig in, almost wolfing down the food with the speed she was going. Anya watched the girl with a frown on her face but her brown eyes were dancing with fond amusement at Marie’s antics, she only hoped the girl would not make herself sick and throw up everything later.

With a slight grimace Marie felt blood trickling from her busted lip. Now that she was inside she felt the cut in her lip pulsing painfully, the cold air outside had numbed most of the pain. Anya gave Marie a piece of cloth with the direction to press it against her busted lip and wait until the bleeding stopped. The general felt slightly guilty for having inflicted the wounds on their charge in the first place but she knew she had not caused serious harm and Marie would need to get used to superficial wounds or she would never learn to get fast enough to evade her fists.

“We won’t train again today, will we?” the girl checked with a slight worry on her features which only made Anya snort.

“No, you have had enough for one day” the general reassured “And you will take a bath later to sooth your muscles”. In addition she or Lexa would massage an oil into her skin which would help void of sore muscles until she got used to the amount of training and her body had toughened up.

“Anya, who is Echo?” Marie asked after a moment of silence, the girl had noticed how Anya had kept watch over the woman during their whole training after she had tipped her off about being watched by her first.

“She was among those rescued from the Mountain” the general explained “And she is Azgeda”.

Marie scrunched up her brow in confusion “But she does not have the scarring” she commented confusion obvious in her tone.

“Assassins never have markings which would point back to their clan” Anya said as explanation and watched the girl’s features taken on an even more confused look.

“If you are suspicious of her, why is she still in Polis?” Marie asked after a moment of silent contemplation.

“Echo has claimed that the Mountain have changed her loyalties and her purpose of life” Anya answered her tone showing that she did not trust the other’s words “As long as we do not have definite proof that she lies, she will remain”.

Anya closed the conversation with pushing the first commander’s journal into their charge’s hands telling the girl to read until Lexa would meet with the novitiates. Marie nodded, relieved with the time she could remain sitting on the comfortable couch and quickly lost herself in the journal and the story of a history long forgotten.

Marie had managed to read quite a few pages when Gustus knocked and told them that he was to escort Marie into the throne room. Anya left to return to her unit and continue training with them leaving Marie in Gustus’ capable hands.

Marie winced visibly when she stood from the couch, the muscles in her legs felt all cramped up now and walking plain out hurt. She was internally grateful that Gustus accommodated his steps so that she could even keep up at all.

The commander had met with Indra, Lincoln and Octavia speaking about their impending bonding and had agreed that she would hold the ceremony in three weeks from now, offering enough time for the preparation of a big festive.

Lexa frowned at the obvious injuries on the girl’s face and the slight limp she was obviously trying hard not to show. The commander had talked about starting their charge’s training again with her general but she had not known that Anya would start this fiercely immediately.

Nevertheless Marie still smiled happily at Lexa upon meeting the woman’s green eyes, just happy to see her again.

“You do not have any serious injuries?” Lexa checked just to make sure once the girl stood in front of her and Marie immediately shook her head.

With a slight grimace she said “But I don’t think I’ll be able to move at all tomorrow”.

An amused smirk tugged at Lexa’s lips as she shook her head green eyes gentle as she met Marie’s grey eyes.

The arrival of the nightblood children called Lexa’s attention from Marie and the children immediately dispersed around the throne and sat on the floor. Marie was still standing in front of the throne obviously indecisive if she should join the others or remain standing, when Lexa addressed her novitiates “You all know of the Ice Nation nightblood Ontari and you are now going to meet her”.

The novitiates all reacted immediately to this piece of information. The tentative smiles they had had on their faces all froze or vanished and they straightened, sitting up straighter and prouder. No one of them said anything though and Marie frowned at their reactions not understanding why they were reacting the way they did. Lexa had not expected any of the children to disagree with her, all of them had been aware that if Ontari was not executed this moment would come sooner or later. The commander nodded to a guard posted at the door and the man left with quick steps returning only moments later with Ontari in tow.

Marie watched how Ontari stepped into the throne room. Her expression was a mixture out of barely hidden nervousness and aggressiveness. The nightblood children who did meet her gaze were all taxing her with suspicious and openly hateful gazes, but especially the younger novitiates were obviously quite uneasy in the other girl’s presence and stared at the floor instead.

“You are all going to share a lesson every day now” Lexa proclaimed likewise addressing her nightbloods and Ontari. She noted how Boo seemed to inch closer to Thalu having heard that the two had started to form a tentative bond and that Boo was finally starting to settle in, finding Polis and herself vastly different from what he had been told.

Ontari remained standing keeping her chin jutted out and glaring down at the older nightbloods with open resentment but her glare faltered visibly when her dark eyes connected with Marie’s surprised ones.

Lexa knew that Ontari would have a hard time ever gaining trust among the rest of the conclave and she could not begrudge the children of their resentment; the Ice Nation nightblood had been sent into the capitol to kill them and she had no doubt that Ontari would have without batting an eye if she had had the chance.

Marie did not understand why the other children were reacting this hostile towards Ontari, she had thought that now that Lexa as the commander had decided to give her a chance the others would as well. She was internally grateful they had been more welcoming when she herself had been introduced to them.

Lexa watched with a raised brow how Marie suddenly seemed to square her shoulders and walked over to the place where Ontari still stood and sat down on the floor next to the girl glancing up at her mutely with a demanding expression on her features.

It seemed to take a long moment of Marie silently staring up at Ontari and the nightblood staring down with a furrowed brow and thinned lips until she sighed inaudibly and sat down next to the younger girl.

A smile ghosted over Lexa’s lips at the sight wondering internally how Marie seemed to possess in inherent talent to diffuse such situations. The commander let her gaze wander over the whole conclave and started her lesson purposefully repeating again what they regarded as the pillars of a commander.

Ontari did not actively partake in the first part of the lesson but Lexa could see that the girl listened intently although her dark eyes flitted over to Marie from time to time obviously still confused by the kindness of the blonde Sky girl.

It was also quite obvious that the Ice Nation nightblood disagreed on compassion being required from a commander by the furrow in her brow at Thalu’s immediate answer.

“A true leader spends day and night with the purpose to keep their people save and puts all effort to better their lives, sacrificing themselves when they have to, that does take compassion, Ontari” Lexa interjected her green eyes intense as she looked down at the younger girl.

“You disagree?” the commander called Ontari out directly putting her into a position where she needed to justify her opinion.

The girl’s dark eyes were angry when she met the commander’s calm gaze “A powerful leader does not need to make sacrifices” her voice was arrogant and her whole poise as well.

Lexa looked down at the younger girl with a heavy piercing gaze sighing under her breath. She had once also shared that believe, why would a leader need to make sacrifices? She did not wish to bring up Costia with Ontari, so Lexa instead described the decision she had been faced with at the Mountain asking the younger girl for what she would have decided.

But it was obvious rather quickly that Ontari did not understand the gravity of the decision Lexa had to make back then. “I watched my warriors being shot down” Lexa calmly retold the situation on the ridge in front of the Mountain “The Mountain threatened to destroy the capitol with their missiles. All they wanted in exchange for all our prisoners were that I called the army to retreat and…” her voice trailed off shortly and Marie’s grey eyes seemed huge in her face when she looked up at the commander and Lexa felt her voice waver slightly as she said “… and they demanded Marie”.

A sheen of tears glistened in Marie’s eyes and her breathing visibly quickened as the memories of the night resurfaced in her mind. Lexa feared the girl was slipping into another panic attack, still remembering how the girl had clung to Anya in the Mountain before its final destruction.

Ontari had already opened her mouth to retort that the Sky girl was “only” her second and replaceable when Lexa suddenly stood from her throne halting the younger girl in her answer.

Lexa advanced carefully on Marie knowing that this state of mind could leave people confused and unresponsive. At first the girl’s grey eyes were wide and unseeing and she visibly inched away from Lexa’s outstretched hands, clearly not recognizing the commander.

Ontari watched the scene with a frown. Until now she had only seen the general together with the blonde Sky girl and she had not expected the commander to truly have a close bond to her as well. The other novitiates watched with worried eyes, they had all already heard what had transpired at the Mountain and all of them had taken an instant liking to Marie; it was obvious that what happened there was bothering the girl deeply to cause this condition.

“Marie” Lexa addressed the girl in a soothing tone and when that failed to show a reaction she tried “little star, you are save”.

Ontari sat near enough to Marie to be able to hear the commander’s almost whispered words and the compassion in her green eyes for the blonde girl were enough proof to show how deeply the woman obviously cared for her second.

Hearing her nickname and Trigedasleng sort of reached Marie even through her blind panic still caught in the Mountain mentally and she blinked at Lexa with silent tears rolling down her cheeks, immediately hurling herself at the woman once she recognized her again.

“Sshhh” Lexa soothed the girl and enveloped her in her arms, while she nodded at a guard and shortly addressed the rest of the conclave “You are dismissed for now, we will resume tomorrow”.

Ontari still watched how the commander cradled the girl’s body against her own and gently stroked her blonde hair to calm her whispering something in her ear while she did. The Ice Nation nightblood followed the guard who had brought her into the throne room willingly, her mind in utter turmoil. The longer she now stayed in Polis the more her teachings were put to a test and watching this intimate scene had touched something inside her, she could not quite put a name on right now. But she was absolutely convinced that Nia would never have enveloped her with this tender care just to sooth her fears; in fact she could not remember a single tender touch from the Ice queen at this point. 

 

 

Chapter 125

Lexa ordered Gustus to tell a handmaid to prepare a bath ahead in her quarters, knowing that a warm bath would help Marie relax further once the girl had calmed again.

The commander momentarily sat down on her throne, their charge pressed against her chest sitting in her lap. Lexa could still feel deep sobs shaking Marie’s body heavily and she felt the girl’s tears dampening the skin of her neck where Marie had hidden her face.

She had originally planned to meet with Monty briefing him on what his role as an ambassador entailed but the commander told another guard to rely the message to the Sky boy that their meeting would be rescheduled to a later point. When Gustus returned nodding that her orders were being fulfilled Lexa stood from the throne, keeping Marie’s body save in her arms as the girl instinctively snuck her legs around her hip and carried the girl mutely from the throne room. Although none of the guards dared to speak up about seeing their commander in such an unlikely state, with a child clinging to her, Lexa could still feel their eyes on her following her every move. The commander had expected her warriors to look down on her for broadcasting a weakness like that but the eyes of those she met were not scornful at all but rather compassionate and approving.

Gustus and Ryder both followed her mutely, their heavy steps resonating loudly against the stone walls. On the way to the commander’s quarters they met Clarke in the elevator who was on the way to her own quarters, having finished helping the healers for the day.

Clarke’s blue eyes widened when she noticed Marie obviously crying in the commander’s arms and how the stoic woman just mutely cradled the girl to her body. “Is she hurt?” Clarke asked, her instincts to heal and sooth pain kicking in, after a weird moment of silence, internally hoping that Lexa would explain, but the commander had looked away instead not meeting her eyes any longer.

“No” Lexa simply answered her eyes only shortly glancing at the blonde woman before she stared at the wall again, head held high. Clarke wondered internally how the commander was able to still look like this incarnate picture of power and comfort a child tenderly at the same time.

Lexa ignored the blonde leader on the rest of the ride of the elevator which seemed to stretch longer than normally to her as she still felt Clarke’s blue eyes searching her face intently. She breathed a mute sigh of relieve when they reached the top floor of the tower and she already strode out of the elevator before Clarke had even started to move.

Gustus and Ryder took up post in front of the commander’s quarters relieving the guards which had stood there before of their duty for now.

The bath had already been prepared and the tube was filled with gently streaming hot water which had already filled the bathroom with moist sweetly smelling air.

Getting Marie to let go of her even for a short moment took rather a lot of convincing and the girl still let out a whining noise when Lexa pried her fingers gingerly from her coat.

“Marie, you need to undress to get into the bath” Lexa addressed the girl amusement colouring her tone and her green eyes were light, but took on a worried expression when Marie did not seem to react to her words. The commander strode from the room in haste.

Lexa got rid of her shoulder pauldron, red sash and warm coat quickly; the warm moist air in the bathroom almost stifling her under her commander garments. Also discarding of the sword strapped to her hip and her gloves before she returned into the bathroom. She frowned when Marie had not seemed to have moved even a slight bit in her brief absence.

The commander sighed under her breath and started undressing the girl with little assistance from their charge who simply let herself be handled apathetically.

“Will it ever go away?” the girl asked suddenly in a voice which had a hollow quality to it and her grey eyes swam in a bout of fresh tears.

Lexa paused in her movements after she had pulled the girl’s shirt over her head and looked down at the girl with grave eyes. She crouched down in front of the girl and gently took her chin in one hand forcing her to meet her gaze. Lexa felt a painful tug at her heart all too aware that she was the reason for their charge’s distress.

“The memories will never leave you” Lexa said honestly, not finding it helpful to sugar-coat the hard truth for the girl’s benefit. “But you will learn to live with them, get stronger and they will stop hurting you like this over time, losing their cutting edges” she reassured with an intent tone and honest green eyes.

Marie looked at her with big grey eyes that seemed to plead mutely with Lexa to make the pain go away somehow and she would have, if her power as the commander had afforded her this ability. Lexa squeezed the girl’s shoulder reassuringly and a smile ghosted over her lips “Let’s get you into the bath. It will relax your muscles from the training”.

Marie nodded mutely but her expression still looked grave and pitiful. She took of her trousers herself and took Lexa’s offered hand for help to step over the rim of the bathing tube into the warm water. Lexa carefully scanned the girl’s body for obvious injuries but besides a few bruises distributed over the child’s body she seemed unharmed.

The water felt good and soothing on her skin and the water smelled strongly of the herbs and flower petals still floating on the surface.

“Can you stay?” Marie asked in a small voice when Lexa made to leave the bathroom and let the girl soak on her own for some time.

The commander stopped in her tracks and turned back to their charge with a smile tugging at her lips and looked down at the girl with soft eyes. It was obvious Marie did not wish to be left alone right now and the shadow of the Mountain still seemed to linger darkly around her.

Following an instinct Lexa nodded and simply shrugged out of her own clothes. She could use a bath too and she knew that Anya had already shared one with the girl.

Marie blinked up at the commander with surprise clear on her face. She had not expected for Lexa to actually share a bath with her but just wait in the room for her to finish. She watched Lexa take off her clothes and her grey eyes took in the intricate tattoo running down the commander’s spine. Beside a few scars which probably stemmed from old injuries either received in training or in battle, Marie could not detect any kill marks on the commander’s skin.

The girl moved away from the edge of the bathing tube making room for Lexa silently and waited until the commander slid into the water behind her. Marie remained sitting in the middle of the bathing tube awkwardly. She did not know how to tread in this unexpected situation and felt suddenly shy although she would have wished to lean back and feel Lexa’s reassurance, Marie was unsure if she was allowed to right now or not. 

Lexa furrowed her brow slightly confused why the girl was keeping an obvious distance to her in the water and gingerly put her hands on the girl’s shoulder, not wanting to startle her. The girl’s body was tense and she was sitting up straight. Lexa remembered that Anya had told her about their charge’s obvious shyness regarding her body and nudity in general. She had not been in this state of undress with the girl yet and guessed her awkwardness would stem from there.

“I will take out your braids for you” she informed their charge in a soothing tone, ignoring the girl’s obvious discomfort for now hoping that Marie would relax on her own after a few moment, and carefully she loosened the bands holdings the girl’s blonde hair together in the braids. She let the red bands fall to the side next to the bathing tube and carded her fingers through the blonde locks, detangling them gently.

“You do not have kill marks” Marie said after a few peaceful moments of silence as she started to relax slowly as Lexa had started to simply let her fingertips run over the child’s scalp soothingly for a few moments.

“No, I do not” Lexa replied easily as she took out the last braid of the girl’s blonde hair.

“Why not?” Marie asked honest interest obvious in her tone.

“A commander’s back is not big enough to bear all the kill marks” Lexa replied voice heavier now but still steady.

After Lexa had freed the girl’s hair off all the braids and combed them out with her fingers, she let her hands rest comfortingly on Marie’s back gently gliding over the moist skin, not quite in a massage but rather just a soothing caress.

“Should I get yours out as well?” Marie asked after a long silence. The girl’s body had visibly drained off all the tension under the commander’s tender touches.

The ends of her hair were already hanging in the water, so she could as well just give them a wash. Lexa mutely nodded and after some manoeuvring around in the bathing tube, Lexa now sat with her back to Marie and the girl carefully started with taking out the metal beads out of the commander’s braids.

“Does the tattoo have a meaning?” Marie inquired after a moment. Now that Lexa sat facing her with her back she could intently study the tattoo and she was fascinated by the design. She felt Lexa’s back tensing slightly at the unexpected question before the commander exhaled audibly and relaxed again.

“I got it on the day of my ascension as the commander” Lexa answered after a heavy sigh.

Marie furrowed her brow and she immediately apologized as it was obvious the woman did not wish to speak about it and that she had upset the woman with her question.

“I will tell you more about it another time” Lexa promised in a lighter tone as Marie started to take out the braids. A shadow passed over Lexa’s face at the memory of her own conclave which only reminded her that she direly needed to think of a possibility to change the bloody tradition which would not result in the nightbloods she had seen grow up slaughtering each other.

After Marie finished with freeing Lexa’s brown locks and they fell freely down her back, they manoeuvred back around until Lexa laid back against the bathing tube and Marie leant back against her closing her eyes in obvious relaxed contentment.

Lexa herself relaxed in the warm water not minding the company of their charge at all. Taking time to soak in the water of a bath had long been the only luxury the commander could afford and she had come to cherish the quiet moments of peace a bath offered; even Titus had never dared to disrupt her at these little moments.

The commander gently roused Marie who had dozed off in her arms when the water started to noticeably cool and quickly washed both their hair before getting out together. They dried of in silence and Marie’s features were still drawn in exhaustion and her grey eyes seemed tired and unfocused.

Lexa dressed in comfy clothes, not intending to leave her quarters for the rest of the day and sent the girl to lie down on the bed just in her underwear. Although the confusion was obvious in Marie’s features she complied with the order mutely.

The commander took a vial of oil from one of the cabinets in the bathroom and joined Marie. The fire was still stocked and it was comfortably warm in her chambers but Marie still visibly shivered lying on the furs without any cover.

Lexa gingerly straddled the girl’s legs, careful to keep her complete weight on her own knees and off of Marie and poured some of the oil into her hand, warming it between her palms before she started gingerly massaging Marie’s back.

Marie had tensed at first at the unexpected touch but quickly relaxed under the ministration. It took Lexa quite some time to carefully massage all the muscle in the girl’s back, before she switched to her arms and at last moved to the girl’s legs. Her left thigh already felt hardened to the touch and Marie hissed slightly when Lexa started to try to force the muscle to relax. But after some insistent presses Lexa felt the hardened muscle start to become loose again.

The commander whipped her hands off the oil on a clean cloth and covered Marie with a thick fur with the gentle order to remain lying down for some time, offering her muscles some time to rest as well. She could feel the girl’s grey eyes following her through the room as Lexa mutely organized some of her things.

“What is on your mind?” Lexa questioned shortly glancing over her shoulder as she stowed away some maps in their rightful places. She had anticipated for the girl to drift back into slumber but it seemed her mind was in too much turmoil at the moment which kept her awake.

Marie had a frown on her face as she said “Why were the others reacting to Ontari like that?”

Lexa would have regarded this kind of question for some sort of joke, if the girl’s voice was not coloured so strongly with honest confusion and her grey eyes clearly showed that she had tried hard to think of a reason and had failed to come up with one herself. Lexa felt a certain level of alarm at the young girl’s measure of trust she still did seem to possess for strangers. After Ontari had abducted Marie from Polis the commander would have expected Marie to react similar to the other nightbloods, but the girl had reacted in the complete opposite way.

The commander went over back to the bed and sat down on the edge meeting Marie’s gaze with calm green eyes. “Marie, Ontari was sent to Polis by queen Nia to assassinate the other novitiates and me. So that she could have risen to take up command” she tried to reason with the girl in a gentle tone.

“But she did not” Marie retorted immediately with scrunched up brows.

Lexa nodded with a sigh “She did not, yes. But not because she would not have, but because she failed to get into the tower, Marie. It is still possible that Ontari will try to fulfil for what she came to Polis in the first place if she sees a chance”.

“I don’t think she would” Marie proclaimed with a conviction in her voice that told Lexa that the girl truly believed in what she had just said. Lexa internally could only disagree; they had not seen enough of the Ice Nation nightblood to truly judge if she was just waiting for an opening to strike or if her views were truly changing already. But she would not be this naïve about Ontari like Marie quite obviously was. The level of their charges naivety clearly showed a big difference in their way of upbringing. The children born on the ground learned early on in live not to trust strangers, knowing that a meeting with a stranger could very well end deadly if you did not keep your guard up at all times. Marie had obviously not learned the same thing and Lexa internally questioned if she ever would adapt this way of thinking. The girl had trusted Arla, only to be betrayed and used; she had trusted Roan blindly shortly after meeting him which luckily had not ended badly for her and she now seemed to trust Ontari even though she had been abducted by her.

Trying to teach their charge some distrust when meeting a stranger would be imperative in keeping the girl alive or situations like this were bound to repeat themselves.

After a long moment of silence Lexa had decided that she would try to explain more in depths why trusting Ontari like this was so dangerous. “Ontari has been raised with the purpose to take over as the commander, Marie” Lexa explained intently and held up her hand when Marie made to interrupt her. “Let me finish” she said firmly and after Marie nodded mutely, she continued “Her whole life she was trained for this day and her training will not have been like anything you have seen my nightbloods be subjected to”.

Lexa waited for a moment and Marie nodded remembering the heavy scarring she had seen on Ontari’s back while cleaning her back off of the black blood in the cave.

“It will have quite literally been beaten into her that she needs to be the commander” Lexa continued with a heavy voice. Although she would continue to remain wary of the Ice Nation nightblood until she had proven not to be loyal anymore to her queen, Lexa could still feel some compassion for the fate of the girl. Ontari had told her that she been ripped from her parents at a young age and brought to the Ice queen afterwards; so the girl had had little say in her upbringing.

“But she is not allowed to hurt you…” Marie said with a furrow to her brow, as if the idea that Ontari could still try something had not even crossed her mind until now. Lexa smiled down at the girl with a heavy sigh; if the world would work in such a way everything would be so much easier.

“We are taking every possible precaution to prevent such an event” Lexa reassured Marie and squeezed her shoulder.

The girl’s grey eyes had lost their previous tiredness and Lexa said she could get up now if she wished. “Do I have to?” Marie asked in a slightly whiny tone only getting even more comfortable under the furs.

Lexa shook her head with amusement dancing in her green eyes and simply offered the first commander’s journal to the girl. Marie looked at the book for a few moments as if contemplating if she actually wanted to read or not. Lexa furrowed her brow and the corners of her lips dipped in impatience until Marie took the book from her hands with a sheepish expression.

The commander took up her own journal and sat down on a chair next to the bed, aware that Marie usually preferred them to stay in eyesight. After the girl’s flashback it was expected that she would need the assurance of someone staying close to her even more.

Some time passed in relative silence between them, only interrupted by the occasional rustle of a page and the continuous scratching of the feather against the page as Lexa noted down her thoughts. The companionable silence was disturbed again when Anya returned to the commander’s quarters, breathing heavily, and a few new grazes were visible on her face and hands, testament to a hard training session.

“The water in the tube might still be warm enough” Lexa informed barely looking up from the page she was scribbling fervently on.

Anya huffed but nodded mutely, discarding her armour quickly and although the water was only lukewarm it sufficed to get clean quickly.

“How do your muscles feel?” Anya asked Marie once she returned out of the bathroom, cleaned off the grime and blood.

“Lexa massaged them” Marie said with a smile looking up from the book and closing it, welcoming the distraction Anya presented.

Anya frowned slightly, as she had planned to do that later; but she quickly shook off that thought. She thought they would probably sort of need to learn not to feel the need to outcompete each other, but it was obvious that was solely something she and Lexa would need to learn with, for Marie this things seemed to come naturally without effort and conscious thought. She felt certainly soothed when Marie immediately scooted over to cuddle up to her when Anya sat down on the edge of the bed.

 

 

Chapter 126

Monty’s POV:

Monty looked around the room which had been assigned to him deep in thought. The last days had been nothing but utter chaos and he had barely had a moment to breathe, less than actually sit down and think.

He had to admit that the room was much grander than he would have expected when Clarke had approached him and nearly begged him to agree to take up the post as the ambassador of Skykru. If someone else than Clarke would have asked him, Monty was sure he would have declined, unwilling to stay within the grounder capitol. Clarke had made it pretty obvious that she did not deem anyone else fitting for the post instead of herself and Monty could still see the guilt in her blue eyes and how drawn her features had been.

What he had seen this far from the grounder capitol and its inhabitants had not matched at all to what Monty had expected. Even though there were many warriors scattered around the streets he had quickly realized that there was much more to the grounder’s lives than visible on first glance.

He had watched the other part of the Skykru delegation leave the capitol with mixed feelings. Monty would have felt saver to leave with them, but he knew that Clarke was right in her opinion that he could help their people better if he remained here.

Monty had caught sight of Marie standing between the commander and the fierce looking general. The girl’s face clearly showed that she was neither interested in seeing Skykru off, nor was she very awake and Monty felt a smile tugging at his lips when the general glared down at the unmindful girl and Marie was completely unfazed and only leaned against the woman slightly. It was astounding to him how quickly and seemingly effortlessly the girl had adapted to the new world around them and had found a place for herself; he dearly hoped that the rest of their people will manage to follow her example.

He felt a painful tug in his heart as a memory of happier days in the throes of his family resurfaced and were replaced by his mother dying on the wooden pole. Monty knew that she would have been executed on the Ark for a crime like trying to break out a prisoner so he knew that feeling resentment for the commander and the grounders was not warranted at all. Monty still wished that everything would have played out differently; he had seen how aggressive Pike and his mother had been against the few Trikru warriors who had remained at Arkadia to teach them how to hunt efficiently without guns. He had watched their behaviour without doing anything and now he could not stop wondering if he would have been able to change his mother’s mind, if he had just tried harder.

Monty sat down on the bed which was huge for his understanding, being used to the small metal beds of the Ark in Farm Station, which had always been one of the poorer stations. The bed was laden with a variety of furs from animals he was unable to identify but they had been able to warm him comfortably during the cold nights.

A handmaid knocked at the door and he called out for her to enter. Monty stood from the bed again and walked over to meet the girl; he judged her to be around his age. Her skin was tanned and her light brown hair was braided in a simple braid falling down her back. He recognized the girl to be the one which had already brought breakfast to him in the morning and he smiled slightly at her meeting her dark brown eyes friendly.

“Heda let it be known that your meeting has to be rescheduled to tomorrow” she proclaimed in heavily accented English and brought a tray with dinner with her into the chambers.

Monty nodded with a slight frown. The next meeting between all the ambassadors and the commander had been scheduled for tomorrow as well and although he felt slightly uneasy at the prospect of speaking with the formidable commander on his own, he had still hoped to get some valuable tips from the young leader. The prospect of facing the ambassadors without any kind of briefing made him even more nervous. Monty knew that he was lacking any political skills and he expected the other ambassadors to test him soon. His worry must have been plainly written on his features as the handmaid turned and smiled reassuringly at him.

“The commander will meet you before the official gathering between the other ambassadors” the girl reassured in a calm tone.

Monty nodded breathing a silent sigh of relieve. Until now Monty had not left his assigned quarters without the company of Clarke and he had no real clue if he was allowed to move freely through the capitol. But it was still relatively early and he did not wish to spend the remainder of the day alone with his thoughts in this room so he stopped the girl from leaving and asked if he was allowed to leave this quarters. The girl who he now remembered was named Kitara but looked rather perplexed at the question. Monty internally hoped he had not already offended the girl or by extension the commander and quickly asked where he might find Clarke.

“Eat” Kitara ordered stepping over to the door and before she slipped through the opening she said over her shoulder “I will collect you in a candle mark and bring you to Wanheda”. 

Monty nodded in silent thanks; he had learned already that Grounders did not care for exclamations of gratitude and Kitara had looked at him strangely when he had thanked her for bringing breakfast after obviously being startled by his words. He knew he would probably need a long time to try to adopt to their customs.

While he ate his dinner Monty wondered if he could ask Kitara for some pointers. He did not wish to accidentally insult someone because of ignorance. He had no idea what time span a candle actually was so he ate his dinner quickly and eagerly awaited the return of the handmaid; he would need to ask her about that as well.

When the brunette girl finally returned to his chambers Monty searched for words for a moment although he had already outlined what he had wanted to ask of her in the last hour; now he was still lost for words.

Kitara waited for the Skykru ambassador to follow her but it was obvious he wanted to say something so she waited patiently for him to make up his mind.

“Can I ask you something?” Monty finally settled on with a friendly but shaky smile.

“You already did” Kitara shot back with a teasing glint in her dark eyes but she nodded with a smile tugging at her lips.

Monty opened and closed his mouth mutely for a moment, internally perplexed at the girl’s banter. Somehow he had not expected to be met with humour at all.

In the end the handmaid proved to be very helpful. Kitara explained that all ambassadors who did not bring their handmaiden which many actually did, were assigned one by the commander. The girl immediately agreed to try to teach him their language, customs and some knowledge about the different clans in the coalition.

Clarke on the other hand did not really have that much time to spend with him. It was obvious the blonde girl had found what she truly wished to do by helping the healers around the tower. With the sudden cold season many people had fallen ill in the capitol and Monty randomly ran into Clarke on the streets of Polis. Kitara had consented to show him the city and Clarke helped with doing house visits to sick people being shadowed by a guard.

Raven had been able to replicate another radio which had a long range, so that he was now able to keep in contact with Arkadia and he had spoken with the council just before he was called to the commander. Markus had relayed that their people had accepted his placement as chancellor and that as a sign of their good will the council had decided together to destroy half of their weaponry now.

The first private meeting with the commander had Monty on edge and Kitara tried to reassure him that there was no reason to be nervous, assuring him that Lexa was known as one of the wisest and the most controlled commanders they ever had. It was obvious to him that the handmaid was deeply loyal to her leader and seemed to admire Lexa greatly.

Monty was surprised to see Marie standing next to the throne when he was called into the throne room for his private audience. He knew that the meeting with the other ambassadors would take place immediately after and he desperately tried to school his features and hide his nervousness.

He shortly smiled back at Marie who also smiled at him in silent greeting before Monty turned his dark eyes solely to the commander. The woman sat on her throne with a rigid back and unreadable features and Monty was internally impressed by the powerful picture she gave even though he knew she could only be a few years older than him.

He had no idea how he should be able to hold his ground among the other ambassadors who were all experienced warriors and many years older than him.

“Monty from the Sky people” the commander addressed him in a firm tone and he inclined his head slightly to indicate he was listening. “You will need to treat carefully with the other ambassadors, they will be waiting for you to show weakness and strike when you expect it the least”.

Monty nodded with a mute sigh, he had already expected as much. “The council has decided to already destroy half of our weaponry now, as a sign of good will” he said trying to keep his voice as steady as possible “And Kane reported that our people seem content to accept him as chancellor and with the joining to the coalition, commander”.

He was unable to decipher from the young woman’s expression if she was pleased at the news or not as her expression did not seem to change at all as she inclined her head mutely. Monty tried to keep from fidgeting under the commander’s intense silent stare.

“It is my understanding that you did not receive any kind of tutelage in politics” the commander said after a heavy moment of silence.

“No, I did not” Monty immediately agreed but he added quickly “But I am sure I will be able to learn”. He was aware that he needed to remain in the commander’s good graze if Skykru wanted to have a chance at survival.

“We shall see” the commander commented ominously “We will meet every few days if I have time so I can offer some help in political questions”.

Monty blinked up at the commander with a surprised expression; he had truly not anticipated that the woman would offer him aid and he guessed the woman must be very busy so he knew it was a great honour. After a long silent moment Monty gathered himself and hastily thanked the commander for her offer and he thought to see amusement flash over her impassive face before she nodded and called out to the guards that the meeting could now officially begin.

Monty straightened his shoulders consciously and stepped back from the throne to stand in front of the chair assigned to Skykru now. He had been asked in the morning if they had a symbol yet for their clan and he had watched how a flag was painted after his instructions. The flag now hung over his chair, as all the other chairs were indicated by the symbols of the different clans of the coalition as well.

He had described a structure formed out of three pointed ellipses overlapping each other which now resembled the shape of a rocket. As they had lived in space a rocket had fitted and the drawing was crude enough to be easily explained.

The other ambassadors had obviously already waited in front of the grand doors and quickly filed into the throne room. When all had entered the throne room, everyone fell to their knees in unison in front of the commander for a moment and Monty quickly followed their example, all too aware that most of the others had their eyes trained on him and were watching every move he made.

During the first part of the meeting Monty only listened intently to what was spoken. He had no idea if the meeting were always held in English or if the commander had switched to English so that he was able to understand what was said. He was glad Kitara had agreed to teach them their language as he did not wish to be an inconvenience.

He was startled slightly when the commander suddenly asked for news regarding Kane’s appointment as chancellor. But he quickly recovered and relayed again what he had already told the commander in private.

He tried to let his gaze travel over the other ambassadors while he spoke, unwilling to raise the impression that he wanted his people to remain isolated within the coalition.

Monty noted that most of the ambassadors openly glared at him in obvious distrust. But he could spot two or three faces which did not hold the same scorn and he kept his features calm and did not react to the open hate directed against him and his people.

He still did breathe easier once the conversation turned away from him and he caught the commander slightly inclining her head towards him which probably meant that he had not totally screwed up yet.

When the meeting finally came to an end the ambassadors left the throne room in little groups. It was obvious quickly which clans had the strongest ties to each other. Monty trailed behind them keeping a slight distance and he had the distinct feeling that at least part of them were probably already talking about him and Skykru as they immediately switched back to their mother tongue.

Monty was still relived that the first official meeting for him was over now without a total catastrophe. He smiled slightly when he spotted Kitara waiting for him. The girl had promised to show him to a tailor after telling him that his clothes were unacceptable for the weather.

“From which clan are you, Kitara?” Monty asked keeping his voice low and looking at the brunette girl inquiringly.

Kitara raised a brow in question “You can’t tell?” there seemed to be a teasing note to her voice.

Monty blinked at the girl in confusion and internally wondered how he should know. The only clan he could definitely identify was Ice Nation with their facial scars, but apart from that he was still pretty clueless.

“I am Trikru” the girl answered after a moment.

Monty nodded mutely unsure how he should have been able to recognize that. He could not see any obvious markings, scars or tattoos on her body.

“You truly need to teach me your language quickly” he said, changing the topic abruptly. He guesses that language skills should be his first priority right now. He could not expect everyone to talk English for his sake and he already knew that a lot of the people who had not chosen the path of a warrior did in fact not speak English at all.

“You will learn soon enough” Kitara said with a playful glint to her dark eyes.

Monty slightly cocked his head to the side before he shook his head. His lips were tilted into a smile as he joked “You could have just insulted me without me knowing at all”.

Kitara nodded with a smirk on her face “Do not worry, I did not, but you are right, you need to learn Trigedasleng quickly”.

He was thankful for Kitara’s presence as the tailor did not speak English at all. The tailor was a broad shouldered man with reddish hair woven into a few long braids and a long beard which was also braided. He had kind dark eyes and it was obvious Kitara knew him personally. They spoke so quickly with each other that Monty did not even manage to catch the man’s name.

Kitara had to ask him twice to step onto a stool as he had not caught on with the switch in her language instantly. With a slight uncomfortable blush Monty did as he was asked and waited patiently for the man to take his measures.

With a frown Monty watched the man search through piles of clothes and turned to Kitara subtly. He had no idea of which system the grounders used to trade. He did neither possess any money, although he wondered if they even used a currency, nor did he have anything valuable to trade with.

“I do not have any money or something to trade” he addressed Kitara lowly.

But the girl just slightly shook her head “The commander will take care of it”.

“Is it normal for the commander to pay for stuff for the ambassadors?” Monty wondered still frowning.

“If it is necessary” Kitara commented and added after a moment “I am sure you will find a way to pay her back”. There was a suggestive smirk on the young woman’s face and Monty’s eyes widened.

He could not help his mind as it came up with a picture of the commander ordering sexual favours from him and he could feel the blood draining from his face. Monty frantically wondered if the handmaid was messing with him, but Kitara’s face was blank.

His turmoil must have been visible on his face because a moment later the girl bust out into a bout of loud laughter. “I was joking” Kitara reassured and Monty felt relieve coursing through his mind. “Heda has never allowed any of her many suitors to warm her bed”.

Monty wondered if many people had offered to lay with the young commander; the woman was obviously attractive so he thought it likely. He also wondered if something similar might have occurred on the Ark, but he highly doubted it. The position of the chancellor was truly not comparable to the grounder commander.

He had been so focused on Kitara that Monty had not noticed how many of the vendors and people walking through the market kept taxing him with suspicious glares. But as he looked around now he could spot all the eyes following him.

Kitara had obviously caught up to his changed mood and the young woman frowned slightly at the people walking bye meeting their gazes unfazed. “Wanheda should have returned to the tower now” she proclaimed and Monty immediately followed her, glad to get away from all those prying eyes.

The handmaid brought him to the top floor of the tower. The top floor only had a few doors and two of them were guarded. Monty had already heard that the commander resided on this floors but he had not known that Clarke’s quarters were here as well.

Kitara left him in front of the doors after he told him that she would come to escort him back to his quarters later, when they could start with him learning Trigedasleng.

He felt suddenly nervous now faced with the prospect of finally speaking alone with Clarke. After what had happened at the Mountain there had not been a single moment where they had been able to talk alone. Monty knew how deeply guilty Clarke felt even though he had been the one to make the programming. Without him Clarke would not have been able to eradicate the Mountain Men. He tried not to ponder on what he had done, aware that they would have never been able to save their people otherwise.

Clarke was sitting on her bed probed up against the headboard with a large book on her knees which she promptly closed when Monty entered.

He smiled slightly at her noting the exhaustion of her features and the paleness of her skin.

“How did the first meeting go?” the blonde girl asked sitting up straighter.

It was obvious to Monty that she probably feared that he had come to ask her to take up the post as ambassador. “I think rather well” he answered after a moment and he could hear her exhale loudly in relieve.

After another moment Monty stared intently at Clarke and said “You know, you are not the only one who feels guilty for the Mountain”. Even though he had not left his people like Clarke had, he was also haunted by nightmares. When he was awake he avoided thinking about it all together, but at night that was impossible.

Clarke looked rather startled before she shook her head and an almost bitter expression showed on her face “You did what I asked you for and I irradiated level 5”.

Monty stepped closer to the bed and sat down directly facing Clarke. He took her hands into his and squeezed them before he argued “You could not have irradiated level 5 without my programming. You may have pulled the lever, but I made it possible. You have nothing more to feel guilty than me”.

“And do you?” Clarke’s voice was distant and almost hollow.

Monty sighed heavily “We did what he had to do to save our friends, Clarke. We had no different choice and it does not help either of us if we feel guilty for what we had to do. The Mountain is destroyed. We might never be able to wash our hands clean off their blood, but our people have a chance to survive now. We need to survive, or we will have killed the Mountain Men in vain.”

 

 

Chapter 127

Now that Marie had taken up her training again, the days seemed to pass quicker than ever. The commander and Anya kept their word and she was always with one of them. Marie still regarded the meetings with the ambassadors as boring and she had her difficulties to sit or stand through them and not showing her boredom.

Lexa had started to take Marie with her to the early morning training sessions she now held with the nightblood children. Marie had a hard time trying to match any of their skills and it was plainly obvious that she would need a long time to catch up with them. She mostly trained together with Nymo and Marie was aware that the boy was holding back for her sake. The commander had not called him out on that yet thankfully.

Ontari was still not part of the morning training sessions but the Ice Nation nightblood was included now in every theoretical lessons, where none of them were carrying weapons, making it harder for her to try to harm the other novitiates. All of them were still openly suspicious against Ontari and Marie had taken to sitting next to her as a matter of course.

The older girl had looked at her strangely when Marie had sat down next to her the next time they saw each other after Marie’s breakdown. But neither of them had said anything, Marie had only smiled slightly and the matter was dropped between them. Ontari internally wondered why the blonde girl would still sit next to her after openly showing her weakness, but the girl did not seem ashamed or anything.

After a week of the theoretical lessons Lexa had asked Titus to also bring Ontari to the training sessions in the morning. They had increased the number of guards and Titus had remained there as well, keeping a close eye on Ontari during the whole training. Ontari had proven quickly that she was superior in combat skills compared to the oldest nightbloods, but the girl had fought fairly and not wounded one of the other novitiates inordinately. So the dwindling trust Lexa was extending to the Ice Nation girl was steadily growing now.

If Marie was not with Lexa with the nightblood children or in one of her many daily meetings, the girl was on the training pits with Anya. The general was still occupied with training the private unit for the commander and also had to assess the guards posted around the capitol.

Marie was usually so exhausted in the evenings when they finally returned to the commander’s chambers that the girl would promptly fall asleep during dinner. If she was allowed to take a bath Anya or Lexa would regularly check that the girl had not drowned by falling asleep in the water. Due to her bone deep exhaustion the girl’s nightmares started to subdue slowly; she only woke up briefly during the nights and was quickly calmed down again settling between both of them. Anya or Lexa still massaged an oil into her skin at the end of the day and if Marie had not fallen asleep before, she would under the gentle administration. But the oil was effective enough in combination with the massage to avoid the girl’s muscle hurt and cramp as they developed and strengthened quickly now under the constant training.

Contact between Clarke and the commander had been rare. They mostly only saw each other in passing in the halls of the tower and barely spoke with each other. But Lexa had noted that Clarke seemed to improve slowly and the haunted look in her blue eyes diminished some more with every day that passed.

The ambassadors seemed rather satisfied at the moment. All of them were still suspicious of Monty but the young Skykru man had proven himself. He had not raised to single of their taunts and always remained calm and polite. He had even managed to convince the Desert Clan to send healers to Arkadia in the upcoming fall to learn under Abby. The Desert Clan suffered the most under infant mortality.

Octavia’s bonding would take place in three days and the three weeks had passed in a blur of training and meetings. More snow had fallen and most of Polis was buried under a deep layer of the white snow. Anya had been correct in her prediction and Marie had lost most of her fascination with the weather phenomenon.

Risha who had had quiet the growth spurt was still happily jumping into every snow pile the wolf could find and was Marie’s constant shadow at the moment, accompanying her to every training, only in the meetings the wolf now preferred to roam the tower or the streets on her own. Anya had successfully started to train the wolf with little orders, forbidding her to jump onto the bed with wet fur or ordering her to wait at the fire when they ate, efficiently stopping her begging for food.

Marie had still not gotten used to being woken before sunrise and always needed a few moments to wake up before she finally slipped from the bed. All three of them had gotten into the routine that Lexa would be the first to rise from the bed and get ready for the bed, with Anya following her when the commander returned from the bathroom.

After Anya stepped out of the bathroom with her hair still damp, she gently shook Marie awake. While Anya and Lexa both awoke from even the faintest sounds, Marie seemed to have gotten more resistant to sounds and usually had to be physically shaken to wake up.

The girl blinked her grey eyes open sleepily and stretched under the furs, smiling up slightly at Anya. Marie’s brows furrowed slightly when she noted that Anya was not wearing her usual training armour and a quick glance to Lexa showed that the commander had not dressed for training either.

“No training today?” she asked sitting up on the bed and flexing her arms, which had become noticeably muscular.

“No” Lexa answered instead of Anya “The Skykru which will attend the bonding ceremony will arrive shortly”.

Marie nodded with a light frown. She knew that they would not have a clear time when they would arrive, so she expected them to probably have to wait outside for quite some time.

“When will the bonding take place?” Marie asked again and yawned wholeheartedly. Risha jumped onto the bed to greet her human and Marie shrieked with laughter when the wolf licked her face enthusiastically.

“In three days from now” Anya commented, her lips pressed into a thin line at the wolf’s antics and Marie quickly tried to shove Risha down from her body and stood from the bed.

“You will spent the day with the nightbloods” Lexa proclaimed and Marie immediately frowned.

When the Skykru delegation arrived part of the bonding ceremonies would already start. Octavia had wanted to have a few of the customs of her own people, which would be integrated into the actual bonding. But usually the bonding took place after a big hunt, bringing in game for the festive. The bonded couple would precede the rest of the warriors, showing if they worked well together and were able to kill something significant alone.

After Clarke had spoken yesterday with Anya and made it quite clear that the healer thought they were exhausting Marie way too much at the moment, they had agreed to let the girl stay in the capitol. The blonde healer had tried to explain that the girl did not get enough sleep and way too much strain on her body and that her pneumonia had only healed a few weeks ago, weakening her body still. Anya did not try to argue with the healer that Marie was obviously totally fine again; no one else knew of Marie’s healing talent yet and they wished to keep it that way. But the weather had picked up again and it looked like a storm might be coming their way, so they both agreed it would be saver to leave Marie behind in Polis.

Lexa explained to Marie that there was going to be a hunt which might take them nearly up to the actual ceremony depending on how far from Polis they would venture.

“But can’t I come with you?” the girl asked in a pleading tone giving her best innocent look to the commander.

Lexa sighed audibly, but Anya quickly cut in before Lexa could concede “No, you are going to stay here. And now get ready” she ordered in a strict tone that left no room for arguments.

The girl visibly deflated and went into the bathroom with a pout on her lips. It was obvious she was not satisfied to be left back in the city again.

“She might end up with Roan again” Anya mused teasingly when the girl was out of earshot.

“At least we would know where to look for her now” Lexa shot back with a straight look and a raised brow answering the friendly banter.

Marie was obviously sulking when she returned from the bathroom and a pout was on her face permanently right now. Anya looked at the girl with strong eyes, obviously displeased with the way their charge was acting at the moment. But Lexa shook her head, halting the reprimand Anya wanted to snap out. They had not been separated since Marie had been abducted from Polis by Ontari and Lexa had not expected their charge to take the news well.

The breakfast was a quick and silent affair. Alira had come inside the commander’s chambers and braided Lexa’s and Marie’s hair quickly.

When they left the commander’s quarters together with Risha trailing behind Marie, they met Clarke and Monty coming from the blonde’s quarters. Marie was still obviously sulking after her last attempt at trying to get Lexa to change her mind had been come to a halt by Anya, promising her a punishment if she did not stop immediately.

“They will arrive soon” Monty addressed the commander “Kane just radioed in”.

Lexa nodded in silent acknowledgment. Monty eyed the wolf next to Marie with obvious respect. Risha still was not grown to her full size and the playfulness had remained in the young animal, but she was no small cub anymore either. When the snow melted the wolf would be fully grown, it would still not be a mature wolf for another two to three years though. Monty had of course already seen the light wolf trailing behind Marie but he had not been near to the animal and he guessed it would probably have wickedly sharp teeth.

It was snowing already when they stepped outside of the tower. Indra was already waiting for them together with Octavia and Lincoln. The dark haired girl was obviously nervous about what would happen now. Clarke and Monty had both spoken with her and convinced her that she should give Bellamy a chance and invite him. Bellamy had asked constantly over the radio to speak with Octavia but the girl had denied him every time.

Marie pulled the heavy cloak tighter around her herself to fend off some of the cold wind. Looking at the way the weather had turned again the prospect of staying in the tower did not look as badly anymore to the girl and the pout left her face.

Marie followed behind Lexa who was flanked by Gustus and Ryder. Anya walked beside their charge and watched how Clarke seemed to continue to glance at Lexa, who was completely oblivious to that. When they arrived at the gates to Polis the sun had just ascended and they stood waiting for the Skykru delegation in near silence.

Clarke and Monty were arguing with Octavia that going on a hunt with Lincoln alone was unwise in this conditions, but the brunette girl was steadfast that she wished to uphold the grounder tradition.

Marie looked to Anya and Lexa with worry in her grey eyes coming to the conclusion that something might happen to one of them as well. “Nothing will happen to us” Anya lowly reassured their charge with kind brown eyes. Despite the warm clothes Marie quickly felt the coldness seeping through, she had gotten used to training outside but now standing still proved to be different.

Fortunately Monty had been correct and waiting for the rover to arrive at the gates of Polis did not take long, its roaring proclaiming its arrival long before it was visible. Marie could see Octavia tensing and Lincoln putting a steadying hand on her shoulder to calm her.

Kane and Abby had come as representatives of the council and the chancellor had always been the one to hold wedding ceremonies on the Ark. Bellamy, Raven and Harper had come as friends for Octavia.

The commander stepped forward and officially welcomed the small group into the capitol and she spoke a few words with Markus and Abby before she stepped again. Marie internally grumbled what had been the whole sense in all of them coming to the gates if that had been the whole welcome. She obediently followed Anya’s orders to come back to the tower immediately after.

On the way to the tower Marie could hear Bellamy trying to talk with Octavia but it was clear that the mood between them was rather tense. She thought that the young man sounded genuine in his declaration to be happy for his little sister. It was still obvious that he was not pleased to hear that the pair of them would be gone from the capitol for at least the next two days to prove their worth in a hunt.

“When are you going to leave?” Marie asked when they finally reached tower.

“Now” Lexa answered curtly and gently squeezed the girl’s shoulder, her green eyes were sharp when she said “Titus will keep an eye on you during our absence. You are to obey him as if he was Anya or I”.

Marie nodded with a slightly miserable expression. The last time the both of them had left to a hunt they had promised to return before nightfall and had come back in the middle of the night; now she already knew they were not expected to arrive for around two days and with the weather she thought it might still happen that something would halt them even further.

She watched with a sinking heart how Octavia and Lincoln mounted their horses which had been brought to the tower. Anya also squeezed her shoulder and lowly said “Behave”. Marie pouted slightly but she nodded mutely.

Titus had come out of the tower and stepped up next to Marie shortly glancing down at the blonde girl with an unreadable expression before he watched the commander mount her own horse and the other warriors who would accompany them got on their own mounts.

Clarke and Monty were speaking with the Skykru delegation and Alira offered to show them to the quarters which had been prepared for their stay in the tower.

“Come” Titus addressed the girl in a clipped tone and barely waited a moment before he turned around and swept back into the tower. Marie hurried behind the flamekeeper with slightly dropped shoulders. She still had not found any liking for the bald man and she hoped she would be spending more time with the novitiates than actually in his presence.

“You can move through the tower freely” he said with hard eyes. Titus had no intention to actually function as babysitter for the girl. “You will share all your meals with the conclave. You will sleep with them and you will attend all their lessons” the flamekeeper continued.

Marie nodded with an unsure expression, it only dawned on her now that neither Anya nor Lexa would be there for at least two nights and she had no idea how she would be able to sleep without them. She was not sure if she should be grateful to sleep with the other nightblood children which meant she would not be completely alone or if that would not help at all.

The flamekeeper escorted Marie to the floor which housed the conclave and left the girl in front of the door. The older novitiates were outside on the training pits doing their morning session under the supervision of another flamekeeper, while the younger ones were still in their quarters waiting for the other lessons to start.

Marie slipped through the doors and shortly watched Titus leave the corridor with his robes swishing behind him. With a frown she thought that the man direly needed to laugh and lose the permanent frown etched onto his features.

Kyla, Ryno and Boo were already awake and dressed. Boo had stopped trying to escape the tower after what had happened with Ontari and he had started to form friendships with the other children, slowly settling into life as a novitiate.

Marie smiled softly at all three of them and smirked when the younger kids immediately stood up to greet Risha as well, the wolf visibly enjoyed the attention.

“When will the others come back?” she asked and sat on a stool at the large table. It was obvious the younger children were waiting for breakfast to be served.

“Soon” Ryno said “I am hungry so they should hurry”.

Marie giggled slightly at the comment; she doubted that would have any impact on the length of the training for the others.

Fortunately it truly did not take long for the rest of the novitiates to return. Nymo was sporting a black eye and a split lip and he was grumbling that Kato had fought unfairly against him. Lexa had let her fight only once against him and he had not held back one bit.

“How long are you staying with us?” Saria asked as she sat down next to Marie, while the doors opened again and handmaidens brought in breakfast.

Marie shrugged slightly feeling her smile slip from her face as she answered “I don’t know, until Anya and Lexa return from their hunt”.

“So there is really going to be a bonding between a Trikru and a Skykru?” Kato interjected with a frown on his features.

Marie nodded and tilted her head to the side “Yeah, but what is so special about that?” she asked back.

It was Aden who answered her “Bondings between people from different clans are nearly unheard of. The clans have been fighting for so long with each other that a romantic relationship would have resembled a betrayal to your own clan.”

Marie blinked in confusion, she not thought about what a bonding between warring clans would mean. But she remembered that Lexa had told her that the coalition like it existed now had taken years to be built and was still relatively new.

“What does happen at a bonding ceremony?” she asked keeping eye contact with Aden.

The blonde boy explained “The ceremony would usually be held by the village chief. If it is a really significant bond the commander can also hold the ceremony. It is a pledge of two souls to each other and after some words the bonded pair gets a matching tattoo to signify their connection. It usually involves a huge festive. You have already heard about the hunt before the actual ceremony.”

Marie nodded. She knew that on the Ark weddings had been rather small affairs and were only attended by those really close to the couple. The chancellor would guide the ceremony and a paper was signed. If the couple was able to afford rings or still had them from previous generations wedding bands were exchanged and she thought that there was no real gathering afterwards with how thin their resources had been.

She watched the others eat their breakfast and only drank a cup of tea. Marie sighed lowly, she wished there was a possibility to make the time pass faster somehow. 

 

 

 

Chapter 128

The first day had passed much more quickly than Marie had anticipated. The other children had managed successfully to distract her from missing Lexa and Anya.

But now the sun was setting and it was time to go to bed. Marie’s mood had soured instantly when Aden, who usually kept some order among the novitiates, proclaimed that the day was over now and it was time to rest.

She followed the other children into the huge dorm they all shared. The room looked cosy and Nimo offered to let her sleep in his bed with him; Marie reluctantly nodded not mustering a smile.

Alira had brought a pile of clothes for Marie down from the commander’s chambers and the girl got ready for bed with the other children. When she slipped out of her shirt she heard Thalu exhale surprised.

“Your tattoo is really impressive” the girl explained still looking at Marie’s back.

“And you already have two kill marks” June commented stepping up next to Thalu.

When the others who had heard the girls’ words also stepped closer to Marie, the girl blushed strongly and quickly pulled the lose shirt she wore to sleep over her head covering her back in the process. Marie crossed her arms over her chest defensively and sat down on the edge of Nimo’s bed, hoping that the others would stop looking at her like that. She did not enjoy being in the centre of attention like that.

Nimo shooed the others away from his bed when he returned from the bathroom and Marie gave him a small thankful smile in response. She was nervous at the prospect of having to sleep now and she did not feel nearly as exhausted as she usually did after training first with Lexa and then with Anya.

Nimo’s bed was much smaller than the commander’s and Marie tried to keep to her side of the mattress. Just as she had feared, sleep evaded her completely. The sounds of the others breathing sounded awfully loud to her ears and every step of the guards outside of the corridor alerted her again. Marie tried hard to get her breathing to calm and fall asleep but no matter how hard she tried, she could not calm her racing heart.

The boy lying next to her in the bed had fallen asleep some time ago and judging from the lack of movement from the others Marie judged that most, if not all of them, had already drifted off. She could even hear light snoring coming from Aden and Kato’s beds.

Marie waited for some time more and when she still could not fall asleep she carefully slipped from the bed again. Although the floor was ice cold against her feet she did not slip on her boots so that she could walk over the floor silently.

The guards outside of the door to the chambers of the novitiates nodded to her and one asked where she planned to go.

Tears were gathering in her grey eyes and she swallowed hard to prevent them from falling. “You do want to go into the commander’s chambers?” the same guard checked and when the girl nodded with a miserable expression, the young man sighed under his breath and offered his hand to the obviously upset child.

The commander had briefed them before leaving the capitol that the girl was to be allowed to leave this floor and return to their quarters if she wished but a guard was to stand post then. The numbers of guards who watched over the conclave were always increased during times of absence from the commander, so he could escort the girl to the top floor and stay with her there.

Marie did not meet the man’s eyes when she took his offered hand and she sniffled slightly during the ride of the elevator. She breathed slightly easier once she stepped into the chambers she had become so used to.

The pillows on the bed still held the scents of Anya and Lexa. Marie placed her head on Lexa’s pillow, inhaling her calming scent deeply while she clutched Anya’s pillow to her chest with silent tears trailing down her cheeks.

Marie had cried herself to a restless sleep some time later. Her dreams quickly turned into nightmares. She imagined Lexa and Anya on the hunt, running into a pauna and she watched how they were thrown against a cliff by the beast, smashing their bodies instantly.

With a loud piercing scream the girl woke from her nightmare, her breathing erratic and it took her a moment to realize where she was. When the bed was still empty around her, the girl only cried harder in despair.

Clarke was awoken by a piercing shrill scream from her own restless sleep. Although her own nightmares were mostly kept at bay by the sleeping aid the commander had supplied her with, Laurel had warned her not to solely relay on the tonic, so that she tried to only take it every other night. Alarmed that something might have happened Clarke stood from her bed and looked out into the corridor trying to see who had screamed. The blonde noted that a guard stood post at the commander’s chambers although she knew that the woman and her general were not in the capitol. She thought she could hear the sounds of crying from the commander’s chambers and Clarke concluded that Marie might be in the room on her own.

Clarke had heard the handmaidens gossiping between each other how uncommon it was that the general and the commander’s second seemed to now permanently reside in the commander’s chamber and she had seen first-hand that the young girl seemed to rely heavily on one of the other women to rest and calm her after her nightmares, so being alone right now could not be easy on her.

The guard seemed torn if he should go into the chambers and offer some words of comfort or not, when Clarke hesitantly stepped closer. She had not been exceptionally close to Marie during the short time the girl had been part of the 100, but she did not wish to ignore her obvious despair either. The young man let Wanheda into the commander’s chambers willingly.

The room was totally dark and cold as the fire had not been stocked. Clarke stopped on the door step and asked the guard if he could start a fire and light some of the candles. The girl probably knew the room well enough to not have needed any light to navigate in the commander’s chambers but Clarke was afraid she would just bump into furniture without any light source. The man nodded mutely and took a torch from the corridor inside and quickly lighted a few candles and lastly stocked the fire, he hoped the girl would not fall sick again or the carelessness of not doing so before would fall back on him.

When some light flooded through the vast room Clarke could easily spot Marie lying on the large bed with a pillow clutched to her chest and sobbing under her breath. The girl was pale and she seemed exhausted so Clarke judged she had not slept long at all. Her grey eyes looked huge in her face and were swimming in tears.

“You had a nightmare, didn’t you?” she asked the younger girl in a gentle tone and sat down on the edge of the bed while the guard left the chambers again closing the doors behind him softly.

Marie nodded with a miserable expression and told Clarke interrupted by heavy sobs about her nightmare where both Anya and Lexa had been killed effortlessly by a pauna. Clarke looked down at the girl with a sad expression, she had placed a hand on the girl’s shaking shoulder but she had not pulled her into a hug. She still vividly remembered the roaring of the pauna and how one of Lexa’s guards had been killed in exactly the same way as the girl had dreamed.

“I do not think they would venture into the territory of such a beast, Marie” she tried to reassure the upset girl. Marie looked anything but convinced and was still crying softly, wishing both of her mentors back to her side.

Clarke tried for a few minutes to reason with the girl that the commander and her general were not alone in the woods and both experienced hunters which would not die in a hunt. But the blonde healer knew that she should not make promises like that to the girl. When her words failed to have any noticeable effect on the girl, Clarke tried to remember the melody she had heard Lexa hum to the girl first in the medical bay of Arkadia and later here.

She doubted she got the melody correctly one hundred percent but the girl looked up with a slightly startled expression in her grey eyes before her breathing notably calmed somewhat again.

After a few moments of silence where Clarke just repeated the melody Marie interrupted her “You are doing a part wrong” the girl complained and Clarke listened with an amused glint in her blue eyes how the melody was supposed to be according to Marie.

She tried to mimic the hummed melody as best as she could and watched as the girl laid down again still sniffling slightly and clutching the pillow tighter to her chest. Clarke had not expected Anya to heed her advice and leave their second behind in the safety of the tower and now seeing the girl so obviously miserable and missing her mentors, Clarke doubted speaking up had been the right choice. But she had seen how tired the girl had seemed every time she had met her in the halls over the last weeks after they had taken up her training again.

Clarke kept on humming the melody softly until she was absolutely sure that Marie had drifted off to sleep again. She internally contemplated if she should just leave the girl on her own, but she doubted it would be the last nightmare disturbing her sleep for the night.

Clarke doubted it would be appropriate for her to sleep in the commander’s bed, even if she just wanted to help the young girl. So she retreated to one of the sofas and took a fur to vent of the coldness of the room; the fire would need some time until it had managed to heat the room to a comfortable temperature again.

Clarke’s prediction about Marie’s nightmares became true only slightly later and Clarke was occupied during the rest of the night to calm Marie down every time a nightmare pulled her from her sleep again and the blonde healer felt completely exhausted when the sun finally rose and Alira brought breakfast into the chambers. The handmaid had been told that the girl had left the dorm of the conclave and returned to the commander’s chambers in the middle of the night. The woman had argued with Titus to let the girl sleep as the flamekeeper had wanted to have the girl summoned down for training with the older novitiates before dawn.

Clarke was startled awake by Alira walking through the rooms and tiredly rubbed at her eyes. Marie also woke up promptly and it was obvious she was still feeling miserable judging from her expression.

“I will have a bath prepared for you” the older handmaid said to Marie with a soft smile and left the room again.

Marie sat up in the bed and her expression became guilty when she realized that Clarke had stayed with her the whole night. “I am sorry for disturbing you” the girl said honestly, her grey eyes downcast on the floor.

“It is alright, Marie” Clarke reassured the girl, straightening her spine with a crack.

But Marie slightly shook her head “Lexa said not to disturb you”.

Clarke frowned slightly, surprised at the order “When has she told you that?” She had already been informed that Lexa had efficiently kept her people from seeking her out when she wished to be left alone and now she wondered just how far the commander’s “protection” reached.

“I told her that I went to you when I was bored, but that you also did not wish to go out into the snow” the girl retold honestly and it was obvious she had not wished to go against the commander’s words. “Lexa said that you wanted to be left alone and that I should honour your wishes” Marie added after a moment.

Clarke slightly shook her head “You did not seek me out this time, Marie. So you have done nothing wrong. I came here to offer you some company. And you may seek me out if you wish”.

Marie still looked rather unsure but she nodded subtly. Alira returned into the commander’s quarters in that moment and was accompanied by other handmaidens carrying in buckets filled with hot water. Marie quickly ate some of her breakfast and enjoyed the warmth of the bath once it was prepared; the warm water mixed with some herbs helped to sooth her even further and she smiled slightly when she returned from the bath.

Alira had remained behind to braid Marie’s hair once she finished and had spoken with Clarke. The blonde healer was eating some of the breakfast after some coaxing of the handmaid.

Marie looked out of the window and frowned slightly when she realized that dawn must have happened some time ago “I was supposed to train with the others” she remarked with a pout.

Alira shook her head and told the girl that Titus had been informed that she would not take part in this training. The handmaid had no idea why the flamekeeper was so against the blonde child. She had gotten to know the girl as an absolutely sweet child which was truly easy to like. But that was probably the main problem; the flamekeeper regarded the girl as too soft and the connection she shared with Lexa would be much too deep for his liking.

“If you do not wish to take part in the lessons or the training of the novitiates, you will not have to” Alira proclaimed in a resolute tone. The flamekeeper had just wanted to include the girl so that watching her would not mean any extra effort from his part.

“Oh okay” the girl remarked obviously rattled by the decision. “Can I go outside?” she asked uncertainly.

“If a guard accompanies you, yes” Alira agreed while she finished the girl’s braids.

“I will return to the healers now” Clarke said after she had finished her breakfast and smiled slightly at Marie, the girl waved her goodbye with a smile of her own.

Alira was called away to settle a dispute in the kitchens which left Marie on her own again. She knew that the novitiates would probably be having breakfast now, or pretty soon, and afterwards they had a theoretical lesson scheduled in the library in English first. As she had grown up with English she had found this lesson in particular boring. She wondered if she would be allowed to visit Ontari or Roan, but she guessed that the guards would not let her enter, if she was not allowed to, so she would just test it. She could still return to the commander’s quarters and continue reading before the novitiates would be having lessons in which she was actually interested.

To her surprise no one stopped her on her way to the floor where the political prisoners were housed. Now that she had lived for weeks in the tower Marie wondered why she had noticed the increased number of guards on this floor before.

Marie still remembered the way to the small room in which Roan resided and the guards merely watched her mutely when she knocked on his door politely.

The doors opened quickly and Roan looked surprised to see her in front of it, but his blue eyes were kind as he recognized the commander’s second.

“You have come to pay me a visit” the man drawled in an official sounding voice.

Marie giggled slightly as he asked “And what caused me to receive this honour?”

Marie just shrugged her shoulder with a light smile “I had not wanted to sit on to the English lesson the novitiates have now” she explained.

“So you have stolen away again?” Roan asked with a raised brow as he opened the door wider allowing the girl to slip inside.

“No” Marie disagreed immediately. She had not stolen away the last time either, she had merely not known that the hide and seek game was restricted to one floor.

The man nodded in understanding at the girl’s explanation.

“I don’t like snow anymore” the child commented as she nonchalantly sat on Roan’s bed.

The man raised a brow slightly at the girl; he had no idea what the commander and her general may have told her about him, but whatever it had been had obviously not left a lasting impression to distrust him judging from the way she behaved so trustingly around him now. The letter he had received from his mother and which rested in a pocket in his coat feeling heavy all of a sudden.

“Why not?” he asked keeping the conversation light. His mother was trying to get him to try to have the commander assassinated. The Ice queen had been less than pleased to learn that Ontari was now staying officially in Polis under Lexa’s orders. It had destroyed most of the plans she had had in place and she was using the cold season to try to spin new plans to dethrone the commander and have Ontari take her place. If she managed to have the commander eliminated he had no doubt that Ontari could win the conclave, even if she truly competed fairly he had heard that her skills in combat outclassed the other nightblood children by far.

But he also was aware that he would never get to be king of the Ice Nation if Ontari got the reign over the coalition, his mother would not willingly leave the throne and he still thought that Lexa might still be helpful for him in that regard.

“It is just so cold and wet” the girl complained and looked out of the window sullenly, where snowflakes were whipped around by a strong wind “And Anya says I can’t move on it yet”.

“You have not been born on the Ground” Roan commented “And you have not been taught by someone who grew up surrounded in it”.

“I guess so” Marie said after a moment.

“Have you trained on ice yet?” Roan asked. He had heard that the stream near Polis had finally frozen over completely.

The girl shook her head with a frown. Anya had said that they would be staying on the training pit. She had heard that some of the children residing in Polis were sort of skating over the ice for fun, but after what she heard from Lexa, she doubted the commander would allow her to join.

“Then I shall teach you” Roan offered lightly and held a hand to the girl to hoist her from the bed. Marie seemed to think for a moment if to take him up on the offer or not, but in the end she did reach out for his hand with a rather shy smile.

“Judging from the fact that you have not been raised to fight, I have heard that your skill are already impressive” Roan said on the way out of the hall. Two guards immediately followed them, but Roan did not pay them any mind; during the months he had spent in the tower he had gotten used to the guards following him around.

Marie’s cheeks were covered by a slight blush at the compliment but she still smiled slightly. She shivered immediately once they stepped outside of the tower. The wind had picked up and felt like cold whips on her exposed face.

Roan was much more used to such conditions and did not seem to mind the cold at all.

“It is so cold” Marie whined slightly pulling the cloak tighter around her small frame.

Roan frowned slightly down at her “You will get used to it. You need to ignore the cold. As long as you are still breathing and can move, everything is alright”.

Marie looked up at him with a dubious look, but the girl remained silent. Two more guards had fallen into step behind them without a word.

 

 

Chapter 129

The way to the frozen stream was not very long and they could already hear screeched laughter the nearer they came to it.

A variety of children and some younger teenagers were enjoying the frozen icy surface, making it a competition who could remain on their feet for longer before losing one’s balance and falling over.

A few warriors were also using the ice to train on the unusual territory. Roan spotted Echo among the training warriors, but the woman only looked up shortly. He still noticed her questioning frown at recognizing the commander’s second in his company.

It was obvious pretty quickly that Marie did not have any talent when it came to keeping her balance on the ice. Roan did not seem to have any problem at all while Marie kept on stumbling and Roan had to keep a hand on her shoulder or the girl would have already fallen down.

To Marie the ice felt actually pretty frightening, if she moved even a little everything became slippery.

Roan put both of his hands on her shoulders and forced her to remain standing still “Stop trying to move” he directed and when Marie obeyed he said “Now feel the ice beneath your feet before you do anything”.

“But it feels flat” Marie argued unable to understand what Roan meant at the moment.

“Right now, yes” Roan answered with a slight upturn of his lips “But now start to move your feet slowly and still keep a feeling for the ice beneath you” he directed carefully.

Marie tried to follow his orders but it still took her some time to even be able to take a few insecure steps without help from Roan.

Roan was patient in his teaching and waited quite a long time for Marie to catch on how to keep her balance. When she finally did her insecure expression was replaced with a bright smile and her grey eyes shone enthusiastically and twinkled with joy.

The girl’s laugh was bright and shrill when she finally joined the other children’s play. Roan watched the blonde girl play for some time. It astounded him how the girl seemed to not recognize how many of the other children were looking at her in a mixture out of awe and suspicion.

Echo had abandoned her training for now and came over to Roan, while the Ice Nation prince looked at the girl with kind eyes, the assassin’s light brown eyes were disdainful.

“She should train and not play” Echo commented her voice hard “She is as weak and soft as the rest of her people”.

Roan slightly shook his head in disagreement “She is certainly soft, but she is strong in another sense. A little bit of play won’t harm her.”

Echo rolled her eyes subtly “Why was she with you at all?”

“She visited me” Roan said and he could not totally mask the surprise from his tone.

“She trusts you” Echo concluded her eyes switching between the prince and the commander’s second and Roan could almost see the gears turning in the woman’s mind.

“Whatever you plan, keep her out of it” Roan cautioned the assassin. He knew that the girl had already been used in one assassination attempt and he doubted the child would be influenced this easily again before she spoke to the commander and the general. He did not wish for the girl to get in harm’s way and he had also recognized that if his mother and Ontari somehow succeeded the girl could remain as the new commander’s second. “Why don’t you show her how to fight on the ice?” he quickly diverted Echo’s attention when the woman narrowed her eyes sharply at him. Roan was still not sure about the depths of her loyalty, but he judged that at the moment if she was faced with the choice he would lose against his mother.

Echo’s eyes darkened considerably and when she made to move in the girl’s direction Roan stopped her with a hand on her elbow “And don’t kill her” he admonished “It will cost both of our heads if you kill the commander’s second in training”.

Roan had seen the protectiveness for Marie in both the commander and the general and he was absolutely sure that at least Echo would be executed if she accidentally killed the blonde girl in training. He asked the guards for training staffs, not willing to watch the assassin train the girl with an actual sharp weapon, although he was aware that a hard enough blow with a wooden staff to the right place could also be fatal.

The guards followed them on the ice, decreasing the distance to the girl. Marie looked up startled at Echo calling her over.

The girl’s grey eyes narrowed suspiciously and from the way she glanced to the guards first and then to Roan, the prince concluded that she had at least learnt to show some distrust. When he offered one of the staffs to the girl she cautiously took it looking up at him in question.

“Echo can train with you on the ice” Roan explained stepping closer to Marie. The girl’s grey eyes widened minutely and it was obvious she was rather reluctant to actually face the Ice Nation woman.

Marie actually felt her heart beat faster as she took the staff; she could still vividly remember the woman fighting against Anya and she knew both of them had been rather evenly matched in their skills. She knew that Anya and Lexa were holding back immensely when they trained with her and she did not know if this woman would hold back as well, otherwise she probably would not stand even a slim chance and would only end up hurt.

She also noted how the guards had stepped much closer and had their hands on the handles of their swords, ready to step in any moment if needed. Marie straightened her shoulders and schooled her features; she knew that if she ducked out now it would seem as if she was too afraid to even try.

So Marie turned around with a raised chin and held the staff protectively in front of her. She was still unprepared for the ferocity with which the woman attacked her and Marie crashed onto the ice surface hardly. The woman had not truly hit her hard but it had been enough for her to totally lose her balance. She had been startled by the speed Echo managed to maintain on the ice.

Marie stood up with a pained grimace after hitting a shoulder hard on the ice which proved to be harder than she had anticipated when falling onto it. She still faced the other woman again and got ready to defend herself again. But the same scene repeated itself three times before a female voice suddenly interrupted Marie facing the assassin again “She will never learn it that way”.

Marie whipped around and looked at Ontari with widened eyes. The Ice Nation nightblood also had a training staff in hand and from a cut on her forehead black blood was trickling down the left side of her face.

Titus stood a few feet away and was still training with Aden and Marie recognized Thalu and Kato training with each other next to them. She had not noticed them coming onto the frozen stream as well and wondered for how long they had been there.

Ontari moved behind Marie with ease and let her own staff fall to the ground and motioned for Echo to attack again. Marie was still slightly surprised by the older girl showing up and Ontari hastily gripped the girl’s staff bringing it up just in time to parry one of Echo’s blows. The force of the blow had Marie lean most of her weight against Ontari’s firm body behind her.

Even with Marie between them it was obvious quickly that Ontari would still manage to force Echo back. Without the girl hindering her movements she might have even won against the older woman with ease.

But Ontari was focusing more on trying to actually teach Marie on how to keep her footage. She had grown up with ice surrounding them and moving across it was as normal as breathing for her.

The assistance of Ontari had helped considerably, but Marie was under no illusion that she would be able to move like this without the older girl behind her, helping her keep her balance.

She was breathing hard when Titus finally stepped up to the group calling Ontari back rather harshly. His dark eyes were glittering angrily and he taxed Marie with a harsh glare “You should have been at the training in the morning” he reprimanded the girl.

Marie opened her mouth to retort something but Ontari gave her a subtle shove and shook her head that the girl should keep quite so Marie swallowed down her retort. She shortly glanced back at Roan but the man just nodded to her with a friendly expression and turned around with three of the guards back towards the tower, while Echo returned to the group of warriors she had trained with before.

Marie cautiously followed Ontari and Titus to the other three nightbloods. She kept an arm gingerly wrapped around her side. After she had fallen on her elbow crushing the limp against her rips in the process, Echo had hit the exact same spot twice and she was sure a large bruise was already forming on her side.

Titus ordered the children to resume their training and while he paired off Marie with Aden, he himself faced Ontari. Marie watched for a moment and winced in sympathy when the man hit the other girl hard making her stumble to her knees.

Aden lightly nudged her with his staff; he knew that the flamekeeper would only get angrier if they did not start training before he noticed that they were just watching. Marie nodded absent-minded and she was lucky Aden was also taking it really easy on her. So she had the actual opportunity to keep attention on her footing. Marie was still glad when Titus called an end to the training session and she felt her stomach rumble angrily. She had not eaten much for breakfast and it seemed that most the day had already passed; she had spent way longer with Roan than she had anticipated.

To her surprise Titus did not lead Ontari away immediately but had the older nightblood accompany them to the floor of the other novitiates. The younger ones had remained inside and had a little free time which they spent playing or reading.

All of them stopped what they were doing immediately when the group entered and the younger ones looked at Ontari with suspicious eyes moving closer together as they did.

Marie could hear Ontari snort lightly under her breath and the older girl rolled her eyes at the antics of the other novitiates.

Ontari watched how Titus turned around just as handmaidens entered the room bringing in dinner. She knew the younger children were rightfully suspicious of her, but she was also aware that she was being tested right now and she would not be dumb enough to try anything right now. She knew her time would come; she just had to be patient. Marie smiling slightly at her, made Ontari’s thoughts pause suddenly. She truly had no idea why the young girl was still this kind to her, she could only speculate on how the general and commander had probably briefed the girl to act around her. But she highly doubted they would have told her to remain friendly, which only allowed the conclusion that the girl’s kindness was genuine.

Titus even went so far as to leave. Ontari remained standing indecisively in front of the long table feeling the others taxing her with their stares.

Marie once again broke the tension by simply pulling on Ontari’s sleeve to make her sit down next to her. The older girl stared down for a moment into Marie’s light eyes as if searching for something and when she had found it she did sit down next to her in one graceful motion.

Marie asked Nymo what they had done over the day and after a moment the boy obviously chose to completely ignore Ontari’s presence all together and said that they had played another round of hide and seek. Titus had obviously not been pleased to find the children playing instead of studying something.

“He just needs something to lighten his mood” Marie commented sullenly.

“I do not think he is even capable of laughing” Saria added with a frown and burst out laughing herself.

Ontari listened to the younger novitiates discussing between themselves how they might coax a laugh from the flamekeeper. Internally she had to agree to the girl from Delfikru that such a thing was probably impossible to achieve; neither did she see the sense in trying to. She did not contribute anything to their discussion but merely listened how they started to plan what Marie called a “prank”. She doubted that they would achieve their set goal in such a fashion.

Marie had argued that maybe Titus was just lacking things to make him happy. Ontari frowned when the girl retold how she had always smiled when her mother gave her a special nightgown with a dancing penguin on it. She had no idea how such a thing should have looked like, nor what could have been funny about it. The idea of having something painted on clothes was alien to her; clothes had to be practical nothing else.

But it seemed the other children found the idea to paint something on the flamekeeper’s robes amazing. Ontari listened with a raised brow how they discussed what they could paint; Nymo added that they had some suitable paint here which probably would not even be removable by washing.

“Your plan is lacking something” Ontari commented in a bored tone, she still did not understand the sense behind what they were planning.

Marie looked up at her with a surprised expression that turned into a silent question. Internally Marie was happy that the older girl seemed to start to participate somehow.

“You need to get hold of such a robe” Ontari said solely looking at Marie.

Marie’s face fell slightly; she had not even thought about that yet.

But Aden had a good idea to solve that. The boy knew how to prepare a tea that would function as a sleeping aid and worked pretty quickly. He said that he could easily convince the flamekeeper to stay in the library with him to discuss something and he could then offer him some of the tea and he was pretty convinced that the man would drink the tea.

Another problem was that none of them beside Aden actually knew where the flamekeeper’s rooms were located. So after some coaxing Thalu agreed to take up Aden’s place in the plan and drug Titus with the tea.

Titus himself unknowingly made their plans easier. He proclaimed that all of them would come to the library with him right now to revise a lesson which had not taken place during the day.

Ontari followed the notably giddy children with a slight eye roll. She doubted “pranking” the man would result in anything good.

Aden had brought the herbs he would need to prepare the tea with him. The blonde boy innocently asked a handmaid for hot water to prepare the tea himself. He claimed he had found a special mixture he immensely enjoyed at the moment, fortunately the woman believed him.

Marie did not really listen to what the lesson was actually about and she impatiently waited for Aden to offer the tea to Titus.

It seemed even the younger children were better at schooling their features as Titus kept on glaring at her suspiciously.

When Titus finally drank the tea all the children except Ontari waited for it to kick in. Ontari found it almost comical to watch the bald man try to fight of the sudden effects of the tea for a few moments before he simply slumped over.

Aden directed them to come quickly as the sleeping aid would not show a very long function. Ontari reluctantly followed the other children through the halls of the tower; she had no intention of waiting alone with the flamekeeper in the library and being the only one present when the man woke up. The guards were notably surprised to see the group of the novitiates hurry through the halls with giddy smiles on their faces, but none of them intercepted the group.

The flamekeeper’s quarters were located two floors beneath the floor which housed the conclave and were relatively large. Marie first looked around the unknown rooms with interest, instantly noting on the drawings which covered all the walls.

Saria was the one to find another set of robes in a trunk and the children set to work to embellish the boring robe.

Kato first remained standing back but when the brush was offered to him he did take it with a shrug. He was pretty convinced all of them would be punished for this but his mere presence would have been enough to warrant a punishment, so he could as well truly do something.

Marie painted a big childish sun on the centre of the back of the robe and completed it with huge eyes and a smile on the sun.

Ontari resolutely refused when Marie wanted to hand the brush to her and remained leaning against a wall with a bored expression waiting for them to finish.

Aden hurried the younger ones of the nightbloods who seemed to have the most fun at this. They wanted to have returned to the library before Titus woke. Saria carefully put the robe back into the chest and the group hurried back to the library, where Titus was still slumped over in the chair, just like they had left them.

Marie giggled happily while the others already slipped back into their places and resumed their lessons. Ontari nudged the blonde girl to sit down as well again. Somehow hoping that the flamekeeper truly did not find anything amiss before he found the actual robe; she could still try to deny her involvement.

It truly took only a few more minutes for Titus to start stirring and wake up again. It was obvious the man was utterly confused why he had fallen asleep. He eyed the mug with the rest of the tea suspiciously but the nightbloods all looked the very picture of innocence. Aden had been cunning enough to ask for another normal tea and had replaced it for the rest of the sleeping aid.

Titus let them study for some more time before the sun visibly set and he called the novitiates to return to their quarters with the exception of Ontari, who he would bring back to her room himself.

Marie followed the other children almost reluctantly after she had waved goodbye to Ontari. The older girl had just looked at her confusedly at the gesture. She looked out of the window almost accusingly. It was night again which meant she would have to sleep again, again without Lexa and Anya.

She had felt saver in the commander’s quarters so Marie said goodbye to the other children in the elevator and rode to the top of the tower. She smiled slightly when Risha jumped from the huge bed and greeted her enthusiastically.

A guard had followed her up and was still stocking the fire for her. Marie thanked him lowly when he left the chambers again and got ready for bed quickly.

Marie laid down on the bed which still had the smell of both Anya and Lexa on their pillows and Risha crawled up again settling next to her human. She did not feel tired at all at the moment so Marie stood up again and lighted a few more candles and took up the first commander’s journal and started to read. She did not realize when she fell asleep during her reading.

Clarke came into the commander’s chamber to check on the young girl when she returned to her own quarters and spotted the guard standing post. She took the book from the girl’s chest and blew out some of the candles again. Her steps had woken Marie slightly and she pushed the girl to remain lying down “Sleep, Marie” she said softly when she saw the girl’s frightened expression. Clarke would spend the night in the commander’s quarters again, Risha’s presence seemed to help Marie somewhat but it was not enough to ward off all nightmares.  

 

Chapter 130

Anya and Lexa were both bones deep exhausted. The snow storm had gotten steadily worse with every passing hour; fortunately, Lincoln was an experienced hunter and he had managed to take down a bear with Octavia and both had sustained no more than a few scratches.

As the weather had only continued to deteriorate and a bear was an impressive enough hunt, Lexa had called off the hunt earlier than expected. The rest of the hunting party had taken down a stag, a wolf and a few smaller animals. They had travelled hurriedly back to the capitol not resting for the night expecting the storm to pick up even more if they waited.

They reached Polis again before the sun rose. The bonding ceremony would take place on the evening of the next day which would allow for enough time for their whole party to rest before the festivities would start which could easily carry on for a day or two.

Even though the weather conditions had been less than ideal the hunt had been a complete success and fortunately none of the participants had gotten seriously injured.

Lexa would not have admitted it out loud, but she was rather impatient to see for herself that their charge was alright. She was unused to worry like that for a child and the uncertainty had bugged her from the very moment they had left the capitol two days ago. The commander supposed that Anya was having similar thoughts, but they had not spoken about it.

They agreed to collect Marie first from the floor of the conclave assuming that the girl would have slept there when the alternative was an empty room on her own.

Yelling was the first Lexa heard when the elevator came to a halt on the floor. Anya looked at the commander with a raised brow, she recognized the voice for Titus, but it was hard to understand his words through the doors.

The guards all respectfully bowed to Lexa and the doors were immediately opened to her. The scene that unfurled in front of them had Lexa blink in apparent confusion for a moment.

Titus had all the children of the conclave gathered around him and all of them were still dressed in their sleepwear, a sight Lexa usually did not get to see. His usually blank face was contorted in obvious anger and his dark eyes seemed to blaze.

The flamekeeper whirled around at their entrance and he ground his teeth together angrily before he suddenly threw a robe onto the floor at the commander’s feet. Lexa raised a brow in question at her former teacher’s antics.

Anya was already fighting off to burst out laughing. While Lexa had only shortly glanced at the robe, the general had looked deeper at it and quickly recognized that the children must have painted on the robe.

“This is entirely the girl’s fault!!!” he seethed loudly with a vein popping on his forehead angrily.

It clicked quickly in Lexa’s mind that the bald man could only mean Marie as she doubted Ontari would put the other novitiates up to something like this.

Lexa fought against a smile tugging at her lips meeting the man’s heated gaze calmly “I am sure this is not worth your agitation”.

Titus seemed to seethe even more and bent down to retrieve the robe shortly, only to unfurl the robe and show the back to the commander. Although he did not say anything his expression was enough to gauge his anger.

Anya could not help herself and actually started to laugh out loud now not even trying to hide it with coughing. She remembered that the woman at the Ark had told them that Marie and her friend had been trouble makers who sometimes played harmless pranks on others, so this all almost screamed that Marie was the head behind this prank. She could not remember a single instance where the conclave would have dared to mess with the flamekeeper. But a robe could easily be replaced and some of the things the children had painted were quite comical even. The flamekeeper was just too incensed now to appreciate their effort.

Lexa let her gaze shortly travel over the conclave. The older ones mostly looked guilty and chastised, but some of the younger ones were still smiling. “I am sure the robe can be cleaned again” she tried to make up.

But Nymo spoke up suddenly, his voice barely loud enough to understand “The paint does not get out anymore” he lowered his eyes to the floor immediately after.

Lexa sighed under her breath, but she nodded. When she had heard the yelling, she had expected that something had happened and not that only a robe had been destroyed.

“We shall speak about this later again” she directed and sent the children back to bed. It was obvious the flamekeeper was still seething but he followed them out into the hall “A replacement for your robe should not take long to acquire”.

“This is not about the robe” Titus retorted angrily “That they dared…” he ranted, but Lexa silenced them with a mere gesture.

“It was a rather harmless prank, don’t you agree?” the commander asked standing straight facing her former teacher.

“They have drugged me with a tea” the bald man added with blazing eyes.

“I will speak with them later again” Lexa said and efficiently communicated that he would not be expected to discipline the conclave for this prank. She was aware what would have probably awaited the children would have been a rather harsh physical punishment and she was glad they had returned at the time they did.

The man ground his teeth together mutely seething in his anger but after a curt nod he stormed to the stairs and left.

“Marie was not among them” Anya commented with a slight note of worry, but amusement was still evident in her brown eyes.

“You needed to laugh, didn’t you?” Lexa remarked critically but her voice had lost its strictness.

“Oh shush” Anya smirked “Tell me, you did not find it funny”.

Lexa shook her head with a small smile tugging at her lips “At least his expression was”. But she would still need to instil in the nightblood children that such an occurrence was not to repeat itself, least of all drugging the flamekeeper.

One of the guards reported that Marie had returned to the commander’s chambers in the night and that she had done so before as well. Lexa nodded to him and Anya and she went to the elevator to reach the top floor of the tower.

A guard stood post at her quarters and bowed to her as well. Lexa shortly glanced over to Clarke’s chambers wondering if the blonde leader was starting to find a place for her in the capitol. She furrowed her brow when she noticed the absence of a guard at the blonde’s door.

“Wanheda resides in your quarters, Heda” the guard said, and his expression made it clear that he was afraid to have overstepped by allowing Clarke access to the commander’s chambers.

Lexa’s frown deepened; she had not anticipated Clarke aiding their charge and Anya’s face was marred with the same confusion.

Lexa opened the door cautiously and peered inside followed closely by Anya. A small smile tugged at her lips at the sight that greeted them. Marie had snuggled up to Clarke in her sleep and the wolf was curled together at the girl’s feet. With a sudden firm shake of her head Lexa tried to shoo the thought from her mind that she enjoyed the sight of Clarke’s blonde hair splayed out over her pillows and she felt a slight blush cover her cheeks at the inappropriateness of her train of thoughts.

Anya looked at the younger woman with a raised brow and a tease glinted in her brown eyes “If any more people find their way into your bed, you will need to find a bigger one soon”.

Lexa huffed at her general and Risha’s ears perked up and the cub stretched itself jumping from the bed to greet them. 

The movements in the bed seemed to have been enough to wake Marie and the girl sat up in the bed looking around the room confusedly. It seemed to take Marie a moment to recognize them, as the girl first just blinked at them as if questioning her mind if they truly were there. When Marie finally concluded that they in fact her returned the girl squealed happily “You are back!” she exclaimed and hurriedly climbed from the bed, in her haste the girl nearly tripped over her own feet.

Clarke was startled by Marie’s squeal and actually had a gun in her hand, ready to defend both of them. But she quickly let the weapon sink, when she recognized the commander and Anya.

Marie quickly ran through the room hurling herself first at Lexa, who had stood closer to the bed, and let go after a short moment to embrace Anya enthusiastically.

While Lexa and Clarke stared at each other mutely for a moment, Anya squeezed the girl in her arms relieved to see her well and alive again. The general noted that the girl’s features looked drawn and tear tracks were visible on her pale cheeks.

Clarke cleared her throat uncomfortably after a moment before she explained her presence in the commander’s chambers. “Marie had not been able to sleep, and I tried to comfort her after her nightmares” the blonde woman said.

The commander nodded to her in acknowledgment and Clarke cleared her throat again, quickly mumbling out that she would be returning to her own quarters again.

Marie still stood in Anya’s arms and the radiant smile on her face was testament enough to how much the girl had obviously missed them.

“So, you made the nightbloods modify the flamekeeper’s robes?” Anya questioned with a raised brow. Lexa turned around slightly facing them and looked down at their charge with strict eyes.

Marie’s face fell instantly, and she looked guilty. After a long moment of silence, the girl finally said “We had just wanted to make him laugh” the girl’s voice was honest enough to believe in her intentions.

Lexa snorted slightly “You will not achieve it that way. Something like that is not to repeat itself, am I clear there?” her voice had been as hard as her eyes.

Marie winced slightly but she nodded immediately.

“And drugging the flamekeeper, or anybody for that matter, in order to get away is completely unacceptable” the commander added staring down at the girl intently. She knew the children had used the situation only for a harmless prank. But as long as the flamekeeper was looking over them it was his responsibility to keep the conclave safe and doing something like that could have potentially put all of the children in mortal danger.

Marie looked at the floor again with a guilty expression. Anya tightened her arms around the girl in a silent reassuring gesture, aware that Lexa was not angry with the children for their prank. Marie winced notably at the pressure put on her side and Anya frowned, letting go of the girl immediately.

“Are you hurt?” she checked and already kneeled in front of the girl to lift her shirt and inspect her side. Anya hissed slightly at the condition of the girl’s side; her whole left side was covered in a huge angry looking bruise which reached over her ribs, down to her hips.

“How has this happened?” Lexa asked intently. She had already discarded parts of her armour and had just turned around in time to see the huge bruise herself.

Marie bit at her lip indecisively for a moment before she admitted “Roan wanted to show me how to move on the ice…”

Anya groaned internally, already guessing what the girl would be telling them.

“On the ice?” the commander echoed in a carefully measured tone.

Marie winced again before she said “The stream is frozen now…” when Lexa looked at her sharply, anger glinting in her green eyes, the girl quickly added “Titus also trained the older novitiates there. I trained with them later”.

“So, you received this during training with the nightbloods?” Lexa checked, most of the anger had faded from her eyes, although she would still remind the flamekeeper that she did not wish the conclave to train on this particular stream.

The girl shook her head and her grey eyes were visibly unsure as she said, “Roan had me train with Echo”.

Anya shook her head in disbelief. If the Ice Nation assassin had fought with the girl, they were lucky she was even standing there right now.

“Ontari helped me” Marie quickly clarified, aware that she alone would not have been able to train with Echo at all.

“She helped you?” Lexa checked with a raised brow.

Marie nodded eagerly “She was on the ice with Titus and the other nightbloods. She had seen me fight with Echo and she stepped up behind me and guided my movements, like you did before”.

Lexa nodded with a cautious expression while she bandied a look with Anya mutely.

“I could not sleep in the dorm of the nightbloods” Marie added when she caught on to the tenseness in both Lexa and Anya.

But Lexa shook her head with a slightly warmer expression “It was alright if you preferred to sleep here” she reassured the girl and resumed to undress.

Anya quickly stepped out of the room to ask for an ointment from a healer for the girl’s side which should help with the pain and bring down the bruising quicker.

“You are not angry, are you?” the girl asked Lexa in a small voice, her fingers twisting the hem of her shirt nervously.

“For drugging the flamekeeper, yes” Lexa answered honestly “But we will speak about that with the whole conclave tomorrow. I am not angry with you for returning to our quarters. We shall speak again about Roan and Ontari in the morning as well”.

Marie nodded with a slightly downcast expression, but she kept silent.

Anya returned into the chambers and shrugged out of her armour. She would have liked nothing better than to warm up in a hot bath right now, but it was night and trying to get some rest was more important.

A young healer Marie had not met yet came into the commander’s quarters a few moments later carrying a small pot. The girl judged the man to be around Lexa’s age and his fingers were gentle as he probed at her side.

“The ribs seem to be intact” he assessed to the commander and the general. The man distributed a thick layer of the ointment on Marie’s skin and left again. The ointment should be applied for the next days until the bruising started to fade.

Marie was already yawning slightly when the man had left, and Lexa and Anya were ready to get into the bed as well.

Lexa frowned slightly when she noted the disarray of their pillows. Marie blushed when she watched the commander rearrange the pillows and she shyly mumbled “They smelled like you”.

Anya and Lexa both smiled softly at the girl and after Anya had ordered Risha to leave the bed, to the obvious displeasure of the wolf, Lexa nudged Marie to lie down in the middle between them.

The girl immediately cuddled up to them and this night they slept closer to each other, with Marie sandwiched between them and content again. Marie slept peacefully for the rest of the night, reassured by both of their presences the nightmares evaded her again.

Marie felt more rested than the previous two nights and smiled happily at Lexa and Anya. Both were still rather tired, they had barely gotten any rest during their hunt, but the sun had already ascended, and Lexa knew there was still too much to organize to sleep the day away.

“How well can you move your side?” Anya asked when they had gotten out of bed and were sharing a breakfast.

Marie looked thoughtfully for a moment and experimentally moved first her arms and then her whole upper body, but she stopped abruptly with a pained grimace. 

Anya sighed under her breath, having expected exactly this reaction from the magnitude of the girl’s bruising. Training would be extremely hard for her, but she judged it would probably be better to let the girl recover for a few days before they picked up again. Marie had made good progress in the last three weeks and giving her body a few days of rest would not cause a big setback.

Marie looked to Lexa thoughtfully for a moment before she voiced a question which had been bugging her for some time now “Why are Clarke and you acting so weird around each other?” The girl’s grey eyes were inquiring, and her face slightly tilted to the side as if she was trying to solve a particularly hard riddle.

Anya smirked at Lexa with a raised brow. The general of course knew why there was such a tension between the two leaders and it had probably only been a matter of time until Marie picked up on it.

Lexa looked slightly startled for the flash of a second before she regained her composure “We are certainly not acting “weird”, Marie” she tried to placate the girl.

But Marie would have none of it and she vehemently shook her head “You are. But so is Clarke. Why?” Clarke had not seemed affronted at all to help her during the nights and the girl had not treated her at all like she acted with Lexa. Lexa also always seemed slightly more distanced when Clarke was there.

Lexa ground her teeth together slightly internally debating if she should just order the girl to let the matter drop. But she knew how curious the girl was and it was a possibility that their charge would just utter the same question to Clarke, if she did not get an answer from her.

She shortly glanced at Anya, but the woman subtly shook her head, even going so far to excuse herself to the bathroom. Lexa sulkily watched the older woman leave, aware that she would still be listening to the conversation and that Anya would regard this situation as payback for her own uncomfortable conversation with Marie.

She felt the girl’s grey eyes taxing her almost impatiently and Lexa sighed slightly under her breath “Clarke is still angry about the Mountain” she chose to state the less dangerous reason.

Marie frowned in confusion “But that should not be enough for that. And I forgave you as well”.

Lexa nodded with another sigh “You did” although she still wondered how the girl could have forgiven such a personal betrayal seemingly so easily. But that was the core problem with Clarke, the betrayal had been personal and although she judged that her head might have understood the decision, her heart had obviously still not.

“Clarke knew that I have feelings for her” Lexa finally admitted out loud. The answer should have been enough, but Marie’s features looked only even more confused.

“So, you like her?” the girl checked with a frown “You can still be friends” she added in an honest way.

Lexa glanced at the bathroom door accusingly that Anya had still not returned. She would settle for anything with Clarke, even if it just remained friendship, but she doubted any relationship would be possible to develop between them.

“And you had feelings for me too” the girl added when Lexa did not say anything for a few moments. It was obvious the child just wished to understand where the problem was and hoped that there was an easy way to fix their obvious problem with each other.

“Different feelings, Marie” Lexa finally clarified meaningfully.

Marie frowned after a moment when the meaning seemed to settle in her mind “But…” the girl mused “…you are both girls”.

Lexa nodded with a cautious expression. They still had not spoken with Marie about any kind of sexuality and she felt highly uncomfortable having to discuss this now with the girl.

“So are Anya and Zora” the commander settled on with a raised brow.

The girl’s features twisted into surprise for a moment before they turned slightly grossed out “Eeehww…” she commented with a grimace.

Lexa smirked slightly at her expression. It had already been clear that the girl had not made the connection between Anya and Zora spending a night with each other, when she had wanted to reside with them in the same room.

“So, you love Clarke?” the girl checked after a moment, her expression still curious.

Lexa slightly shook her head “The depths of my feelings do not matter anymore, Marie.”

“Why not?” the girl kept on bugging completely ignoring Lexa’s obvious reluctance to speak about the matter.

Slightly irritated Lexa answered, “Because Clarke’s heart was betrayed with my decision at the Mountain”.

“She can forgive that as well” Marie simply reassured with such conviction in her voice that Lexa smirked slightly. If the world would just work as easy as it did in the eyes of an honest child.

 

Chapter 14: Chapter 131 - 140

Chapter Text

Chapter 131

Anya had, just like Lexa had predicted, listened to their conversation from the bathroom. The general frowned at the commander’s words. She knew Lexa well enough to decipher just how deeply the young leader had fallen for the girl from the Sky.

She was aware just how stubborn Clarke was and she internally had to agree with Lexa, even if the blonde girl might have reciprocated the commander’s feelings once, she highly doubted Clarke would ever allow herself to feel anything for Lexa now. And judging from the almost bitter resignation in Lexa’s voice Anya recognized that the younger woman was well aware of that fact as well and was trying her hardest to stop her heart from aching for the blonde leader.

It would probably be easier for Lexa if Clarke left the capitol; knowing her to be so near and yet out of reach could not be easy for her former second. Although she had sort of hoped that the commander would keep her heart guarded and save herself more pain, it seemed it was already too late for that. Titus and Gustus would be less than pleased when they caught up with the commander’s feelings.

Marie’s conviction that Clarke would surely forgive Lexa astounded Anya slightly. If there was one thing the blonde leader was good at, it was obviously stubbornly holding onto a grudge.

Anya saved Lexa from having to say anything to that declaration by returning from the bathroom. She had thought to have avoided another weird conversation with Marie, but the girl’s grey eyes turned to her the very moment she came back and were scrutinizing her for a silent moment.

“If you love Zora, why is she not here?” Marie nearly shot out her question, her head slightly cocked to the side in obvious curiosity.

Anya blinked down at the girl in startled surprise, while Lexa hide a smirk behind a cup of tea. If she had been drinking anything, Anya knew she would have chocked on it.

“I do not love Zora” Anya finally said after a moment, when it was clear Marie would not simply let the question slip from her mind.

Marie scrunched up her brow in obvious confusion.

“We just enjoy each other’s company” Anya tried to explain the situation to Marie. Although she would say, that she liked the warrior from the Desert Clan well enough, she truly would not describe her feelings as anything deep as love. It had never crossed her mind to find someone to truly love and share her life with. She had found her destiny and contentment in the life of a warrior and after Lexa had risen to take command Anya knew she would forever act as her general and had not wanted for anything else.

The general waited for a moment to see if Marie still had questions, but when the girl remained silent with a contemplative expression on her young features, both of them were sure that the conversation was over thankfully.

“How do women have sex?” the girl suddenly asked with innocent eyes and her head was still tilted to the side slightly. Although the people from earth had not kept the usage of the word “sex” it was still clear what their charge wanted to know.

Anya had just taken a sip of tea and nearly spit the brew out again in silent shock. Lexa was also looking at the girl with slightly widened eyes and both of them were banding uncomfortable glances. Anya internally wondered why the girl seemed to be so curious all of a sudden and she could not remember having to speak about the physical aspects of sharing a night to Lexa or to Tris. She herself could also not remember actually asking someone about it either.

“Well…” Lexa started but it was obvious the young leader was rather lost for words. Anya did not seem to fare any better judging from the way she had locked her jaw tightly and was looking anywhere but at Marie.

“What do you know about sex, Marie?” the commander asked not answering the girl’s question at all; the foreign word felt slightly weird on her tongue.

Marie frowned slightly at the evaded question but her answer came easily, ”Sex is when a man puts his penis in the woman’s vagina”.

Both Anya and Lexa looked at their charge slightly shocked. Both were sharing the opinion that the girl was awfully young for such details. They were surprised how the girl gave her answer, not even batting an eye. But the words sounded as if they had been put in her mouth and clearly not in the way Marie would have worded something.

“But two women don’t have a penis” the girl concluded, her face confused again and her gaze wandered between Anya and Lexa, who were both equally embarrassed. 

“No, they don’t” Lexa agreed finally after swallowing forcefully “But woman can have intimacy without one”. Her cheeks were slightly dusted with a blush she could not prevent from forming.

“How?” the girl kept on asking obviously still curious about the subject.

Anya slightly shook her head. “You are way too young to wonder about such things, Marie” the general said once she had regained some composure back and her voice was hard, signalling an end to the conversation.

The girl still did not look satisfied with the answer, but let the question drop when Anya’s expression remained unyielding.

“Eat” the general ordered and shoved a plate in their charge’s direction. Marie took the plate up with a notable frown on her features, her mother had never evaded any questions regarding their bodies and she wondered why both Lexa and Anya seemed so uncomfortable with them. Maybe the people on the ground did not talk about matters like this she thought to herself.

Lexa had never felt the need to talk about sexuality, she had developed her own gradually over time and it had been apparent quickly to her that she did not feel attracted to the opposite gender. Costia and she had discovered together what sharing one’s body could be like. But it seemed that Marie had already grown up differently in that regard and Lexa did not know what their charge should be told at that moment. Marie had caught both of them off guard and utterly unprepared.

“So how have you ended in Roan’s company?” Lexa asked hoping to divert the girl’s attention from her sudden bout of curiosity.

The girl’s ears turned slightly red and her whole composure screamed that she thought to have done something forbidden. “I visited him” Marie breathed almost too low to understand.

Both Lexa and Anya bandied a silent look and seemed to exhale forcefully.

Although the girl’s face was turned towards her plate which seemed suddenly very interesting to her, her eyes were still unobtrusively switching between both women.

When none of them said anything for a moment Marie gnawed at her lips before she added vehemently “But the guards saw me and they did not stop me”. Marie felt it important to point out, that she did not sneak around on purpose this time; she knew how angry both her mentors had been when she followed Boo without alerting any guards.

The commander’s lips tugged into the ghost of a smile at the girl’s obvious try to justify her actions. She had not instructed the guards to keep their charge restricted to certain places, but she had given them the instructions to not let her out of the tower without supervision.

“And two guards came outside with us as well” the girl added obviously still worried with their continued silence.

“Why have you visited the prince of Azgeda at all?” Anya asked and her brown eyes were hard as she stared at the child. It was absurd for the general that the girl would seek Roan out at all.

Marie visibly squirmed under the scrutinizing gaze and said after a moment “The novitiates were to have an English lesson first and that is boring. Alira said I did not have to go there, if I did not wish. And I came across the floor of the prisoners and it was snowing again and I wanted to tell Roan that I do not like snow that much anymore”.

Anya snorted under her breath in obvious incomprehension while Lexa’s eyes softened slightly at the girl’s innocent intentions.

“And why had he trained you?” Lexa questioned the girl in a calm and even tone to signal to their charge that she was not angry at her.

Marie’s cheeks were slightly reddened with a blush as she mumbled “I told him, that Anya kept on complaining, that I can’t move on the snow and he said, that it was because I was not taught by someone from the ice”.

Anya’s lips thinned visibly at the jab at her training style but Lexa merely shook her head, signalling the older woman to keep quiet, Marie had not meant the comment as an accusation after all. The girl probably had not even noticed the jab at all.

The blonde girl seemed oblivious to the general’s slightly soured mood and told them rather enthusiastically how Roan had taught her how to keep her balance and that she had played with some of the children living in Polis who had also enjoyed the icy surface. Her voice notably lost some of her delight when she enumerated how Roan had tasked Echo with training her. The girl was honest in not having had any chance against the Ice Nation assassin; both Lexa and Anya had not expected anything different. They were both holding back a lot when training with Marie and they doubted Echo would have done the same; judging from the battered state of the girl’s body she had not hold back at all. Anya frowned slightly in surprise when Marie said that Roan had reprimanded Echo not to kill her in training or they would both lose their heads.

Marie did not seem to notice how both women’s eyes flashed dangerously. It was obvious Marie did not seem to believe the prince’s prediction, but Lexa internally could only agree with him. Had they returned to find the girl dead, the commander knew she would have executed both after hearing they had their hands in her second’s death. Anya felt a sudden flash of irritation at their charge at how apparent it was that the girl had not even thought about the possible outcome to be killed when facing the Ice Nation assassin.

Once Marie caught on with her mentors’ tension she quickly said that Ontari had suddenly appeared and helped her. The more the girl told them about Ontari the clearer it became how awed Marie was with the older girl’s skill and Lexa and Anya shared an uneasy glance over the girl’s head. Lexa had tried to caution their charge against trusting the Ice Nation nightblood blindly, but it seemed her words of caution had been lost on Marie. She continued with telling them that Titus had called them away some time later and had paired her off with Aden.

Lexa smiled slightly she knew that the blonde nightblood boy would have known to go easy on the girl as to not injure her seriously.

She sighed under her breath inaudibly at their charge’s account of how brutal Titus once again had been in training Ontari. The commander had made it crystal clear to her former teacher that she did not wish for the Ice Nation nightblood to be killed during training, but it sounded as if the bald man did not take her words very seriously on that matter.

Lexa coaxed the girl to tell them again how their prank had come into fruition and she hid a smirk at their charge’s tail. It was obvious that even though Marie had clearly been the actuator of the whole idea, the other novitiates had been eager to follow through with the prank. The commander frowned at Ontari’s obvious reluctance and she knew that the whole scenario could have played out differently if the Ice Nation nightblood had chosen to use the lack of supervision to try to assassinate the other novitiates. Lexa was not sure if Ontari could have succeeded without any help as she knew how skilled her nightbloods were in fighting, but caught off guard anything was possible. Her own worry was reflected in Anya’s brown eyes but it was apparent Marie had not recognized the possible danger in the situation at all. She made a mental note to herself to speak with Ontari alone again, questioning her why she had not seized the obvious chance as the commander highly doubted that the girl would not have recognized the potential of the situation for herself.

Marie’s tale did not stop with the prank itself but the girl quickly changed the subject of her narration to Clarke. Lexa frowned slightly as the girl said that Clarke spent the last two nights with her and had assured Marie that is was alright for her to seek her out whenever she wished to. The commander had already spotted some of the art supplies she had sent to Clarke’s room distributed over one of the tables and Marie quickly stood up and retrieved a sheet of paper showing it to both of them proudly.

To divert the girl’s attention from her obvious distress at missing Lexa and Anya, Clarke had tried to teach her some art skills and Marie now showed them a drawing she had made. It was still unfinished but it was obvious already what the girl had wanted to draw. Marie had drawn a rough sketch of a clearing in the woods where a smaller figure was fighting with a larger figure, overseen by another adult figure. At least Anya thought it should show a training scene, as some things were rather hard to recognize. She failed to find much resemblance between the figures and them; although the general mused their charge had tried to draw them.

The childish way of the drawing was even more striking when Marie suddenly had another drawing in hand and Anya swallowed forcefully. The drawing had obviously been made by Clarke and the charcoal strokes had formed a perfect picture of Tris.

“I nearly forgot to give it you” Marie said with a slight smile and offered the sheet of parchment to Anya who took it with suspiciously wet eyes. Oblivious to the woman’s sudden nostalgia Marie blabbered on “It’s a present from Clarke” she pointed out needlessly.

Anya nodded mutely unable to form words with a huge lump in her throat. Lexa diverted Marie’s attention from the general by asking about her own drawing. It was obvious the girl would require a lot more practise to become skilled in it, but for her age Lexa mused the drawing already showed at least some skill. As the education to become commander required her to be able to draw maps Lexa herself had received a very basic tutelage in drawing and had never been interested in the skill beyond what she necessarily needed. If it was something the girl enjoyed to do though Lexa would sent an attendant to purchase some supplies for their charge from the market.

She had tried to implement her novitiates to have some free time every now and then. Back when she had been a novitiate they had been highly discouraged from any frivolous activity which was not directly associated with skills needed as a commander. While the previous commander did not possess any real liking to children, Lexa had always enjoyed the company of children and wished her novitiates to at least sometimes be able to act as free as any other child. She did wish the same for Marie, so she would encourage their charge to pursuit other skills than just fighting and political thinking.

After their breakfast Marie accompanied Lexa to the room where Ontari was kept; Anya had parted ways with them telling the commander she would train with her unit now with a glint in her eyes that told Lexa that her general had planned to extract some revenge from the Ice Nation assassin for hurting their charge. Lexa let her go with a silent nod of acknowledgment. No words were needed between both women to agree that they would not let anyone go unscathed after injuring their charge intentionally.

Once they entered the small room together it was apparent to the commander that Marie had not exaggerated her tale of Titus laying into Ontari ruthlessly in training. What was visible of the girl’s skin was littered with dark bruises and a few gashes grazed her throat.

“Has a healer seen to you?” Lexa asked immediately; she doubted the rest of the girl’s body would look any better.

The Ice Nation nightblood narrowed her eyes proudly and shook her head in silent denial. Her hard gaze faltered slightly when she noticed Marie behind the commander’s form. 

Lexa sighed slightly under her breath and turned around to command a guard to fetch a healer immediately leaving the two girls alone for a moment.

Ontari’s gaze considerably softened when the commander left but she did not say anything as she regarded the younger girl silently. From Marie’s posture it was obvious the younger girl was in pain somehow and seemed to favour her left side. She had not seen or heard anything yet that would point to the thought that the commander or the general might have punished the girl physically but with her own experiences Ontari hoped that Marie had not been subjected to this kind of punishment.

Lexa paused at the door which she had left ajar when she heard Ontari’s voice ask Marie if she had been punished for the prank. The commander was internally surprised by the younger girl’s deceptiveness and articulation of worry for their charge.

Marie shook her head with a frown, she had not thought about what kind of punishment could be awaiting her and neither Lexa nor Anya had said anything about it yet so she hoped that she might be let off unpunished. She felt Ontari’s dark eyes scrutinizing her and landing on her left side and understanding dawned on her.

Marie slightly lifted her shirt to show the large bruise beneath the fabric “It is from yesterday” she added as an explanation.

Ontari’s frown only deepened wondering how she had missed the girl still being hit so strongly. The bruising was extensive and explained her favouring the complete side. “I thought I had guarded your sides better” the older girl mused as if mostly to herself and Lexa still listened on to their conversation.

Marie quickly shook her head “You did” she assured “Echo hit me before and I feel on the side as well”.

“Oh” Ontari said and her dark eyes were uncharacteristically filled with compassion “It should get better after a few days”.

Marie nodded and answered with a slight smile “Anya put some ointment on it. It feels better already”.

Ontari’s expression remained neutral and her eyes became guarded again when she heard the door open again and with a flash of annoyance she noted that the door had only been ajar the whole time and the commander had probably been able to hear their exchange.

Lexa spotted the slight flush to the younger girl’s skin at being caught expressing compassion even though it was obvious Ontari was trying hard to keep a straight face. She ignored her apparent discomfort and lightly put a hand on Marie’s shoulder immediately bringing up the fact that Ontari had not used Titus’ drugged state to her own profit.

Marie frowned up slightly at the commander, the confusion on her face honest and confirming the fact that she had not thought about this possibility at all.

Ontari’s dark eyes turned even colder but Lexa had still noticed something flash through them. The younger girl jutted out her chin proudly glaring at the commander in silent defiance and Lexa would have laughed at the way the girl’s stance faltered every time she even so much as glanced at Marie but she still felt irritated with her reluctance to speak honestly with her.

The commander could not shake off the sudden mental picture of returning to Polis only to find Ontari sitting on her throne basked in black blood, the heads of her nightbloods slain at her feet and only waiting to kill the commander to seize the throne for herself.

It was obvious the proud girl had taken the question as a jab at her missing a very real chance but Lexa had actually hoped to get a hint if the girl’s loyalties might already be changing. She knew she could just force the younger nightblood to speak her mind but she doubted that would help the distrustful girl so Lexa swallowed her irritation and explained to Ontari that there would be no punishment and that she recognized the change in her.

Ontari’s dark eyes flashed in obvious surprise before she managed to mask them again. Her gaze returned to Marie and features lost some of her closed off harshness, the girl opened her mouth to try to explain to the commander that she had not truly thought about murdering her novitiates. But a healer arriving at the door halted her and she closed her mouth with an audible snap, her eyes hard and unreadable once again.

The commander nodded to the healer and watched in silence how Ontari stripped out of her clothes in obvious reluctance. Marie audibly gasped in shock at the state of the older girl’s body and Lexa sighed under breath.

“You will be excused from physical training for the next days” she said in a tone that left no room for discussion.

Ontari looked openly confused and obviously confused; she had never been let off training before, no matter the injury. She had trained for weeks with a broken arm and the only thing her opponents did was trying to use the injury as a weak point so she had learned to block out all pain from her mind. She watched the commander guide her second out of the room with a furrow to her brow and let the healer work on her in silence.

 

 

Chapter 132

Lexa had brought Marie to the throne room afterwards where all the novitiates were already waiting for the commander.

The older children had their faces guiltily tilted to the floor and it was obvious they were awaiting a punishment from her.

Lexa let her gaze travel over them in stony silence for a moment knowing that letting them wait for a moment would only increase their apprehension. The children visibly squirmed under her unyielding stare and they rarely were confronted with her harder side.

“Heda, we…” Aden started to say, probably intent to justify and excuse their actions of the last evening.

The commander raised her hand, silencing the blonde boy instantly and she watched Aden’s shoulders drop in defeat.

Lexa explained to her novitiates what could have happened last evening and that she had expected better from them while she let her eyes rest for a few moments on the older novitiates who should have been thoughtful enough to recognize the possible dangers drugging their teacher could bring.

She did not scold them for the park in principle and the commander was sure that the nightbloods would realize that later as well, but the guilty faces were enough testament that they had understood her chastisement.

She made it clear that if something like this were to repeat itself that all of them would lose the privilege of spending time without supervision. To lift their sullen moods somewhat she dismissed the novitiates with the final comment that although the execution of their prank had been careless, the mere idea of making the flamekeeper smile had some merits.

After the other children had left Marie stood directly in front of the throne and hugged the commander with a smile on her face. Lexa was rather perplexed by the gesture and frowned at her charge when she pulled back, although the corners of her mouth tilted up in a confused smile. “What was that for?” she asked her features softer again, as she felt Gustus’ heavy gaze on them.

Marie shrugged slightly with an innocent look and chirped happily “For being you”.

The answer astounded Lexa and she nodded in mute acknowledgement. No meeting were scheduled for the rest of the day so the commander had returned to her chambers with Marie where Risha was already impatiently waiting for her human.

When Anya returned to their quarters later the general had a noticeable satisfied air around her and Marie who had been sitting on the floor with her back propped against an armchair tilted her head to the side in silent question.

Marie had formed a sort of ball out of a few strips of rags and had tried to teach Risha to fetch the ball and bring it back to her. The wolf cub had quickly grasped the concept of running to the ball but the bring it back part of the game seemed harder to grasp. Lexa had watched their play for some time being distracted from the book she was reading by the girl’s occasional giggles.

“Echo will surely not be able to move around for some time either” the general commented with a satisfied smirk and dabbed a piece of cloth against a graze above her eyebrow.

Marie’s grey eyes widened notably and her arm remained suspended in the arm as she had abruptly stopped the process of throwing the ball again.  The girl’s eyes switched between Anya and Lexa trying to figure out if the general had meant her words seriously but Lexa had just looked up shortly and inclined her head subtly.

Risha who had waited impatiently for her human to throw the ball again with her tail wagging with excitement suddenly jumped against Marie’s shoulders in order to catch the ball from her hand, thinking this was a new form of their play.

“Ouch!” Marie chided the wolf who had just trotted away with the ball in her muzzle and rubbed at her injured side gingerly. “Should I heal that for you?” the girl offered in a soft tone looking up at the general.

But Anya quickly shook her head in denial “It is only a graze, Marie” she reassured their charge “And Echo got worse”.

Marie frowned slightly; she was still mostly unused to the revenge system that seemed to be in place in their world. Revenge on the Ark had never worked in a physical fight; fighting on the Ark usually meant a death sentence for both parties.

“And it is a visible graze at that, Marie” Anya reasoned with the girl “One others have seen already. It would quickly become suspiciously for such wounds to disappear”.

Marie nodded although the worry still lingering in her gaze clearly conveyed she would still prefer to heal it for the woman.

“Come” Anya ordered changing the subject quickly and motioned for the girl to strip out of her shirt and lie down on the bed. The general retrieved the pot of ointment from the bathroom and warmed some between her palms; Lexa had never appreciated a cold ointment against her skin.

Anya’s hands were gentle as she applied the ointment on the bruised skin and careful not to apply pressure, but Marie still tensed in obvious discomfort under her touch.

Marie yawned slightly and Anya pulled a fur over her body telling the girl to rest; the bonding would take place tomorrow and the day was promising to be a long one. The girl grabbed onto Anya’s wrist when the general made to move from the bed, looking up at the woman with big pleading eyes. But Anya gently pried the girl’s fingers from her wrist telling her that she would take a bath and return to her.

So Marie ignored Anya’s orders to remain in the bed and gathered the fur around herself with one arm. She padded over to Lexa who was sitting on one of the big armchairs and mutely squeezed herself next to the commander on the piece of furniture. Lexa looked down at the girl with an astounded frown; it took Marie a few moments of wiggling to find a comfortable spot and it was a tight fit in the armchair.

Lexa mutely rolled her eyes at the girl’s antics and she ignored the girl’s elbow digging uncomfortably into her side as Marie had already closed her eyes and burrowed herself deeper against her body.

With fondness in her gaze Lexa shook her head and resumed reading quietly. When Anya returned from the bathroom some time later dressed in comfier clean clothes and hair still lose and wet the general paused in her step at the sight of their charge pressed against Lexa in what must be an uncomfortable position for both of them.

“The commander of the blood reduced to a piece of furniture?” Anya mocked good-naturedly with a tease in her voice as she stepped closer. Titus would surely have a fit if he saw Lexa in such a position.

Lexa did not raise her eyes to the other woman but said “Oh, shush, as if you would not have let her do as pleases”.

Anya snorted at the commander but did not deny the implication in her words either.

Marie woke up some time later and smiled up sheepishly at Lexa as she extracted herself from her weird position.

“Comfortable rest?” Anya asked teasingly and the girl blushed immediately still not used to Anya’s sometimes dry wit.

Lexa shook her head slightly at the general. She might to be able to be openly affectionate towards the girl beyond the confinement of her own quarters but in here she was not forced to keep up the façade of the commander.

Marie recovered quickly when she noted that Anya’s hair was still lose and she enthusiastically suggested that she could braid it for the general. Anya barely managed to supress a grimace and mutely turned on the couch to make space for the girl behind her at the open excitement of the child.

Lexa snorted slightly under her breath thinking that Anya really had no right to tease her about her own closeness to Marie if she now let the girl have her will like that as well.

The rest of the evening passed peacefully. Lexa deeply cherished the leisure time she had as it happened seldom and she now only had a day free of meetings because they had anticipated for the hunt to take a day longer. She could have re-scheduled some meetings but Lexa knew how much their charge would have missed them. After her flashback to the Mountain a few weeks ago the girl had been clingy and Lexa hoped that a few quiet hours would help ease the girl’s mind after their separation.

Lexa watched the girl work on Anya’s hair with a content smile. Although the results of the girl’s attempts at braiding were questionable at best it was obvious she was having fun. After Costia had been ripped from her side in such a brutal fashion the commander had resigned herself to the teaching of the flamekeeper interiorizing once and for all that being commander meant to be alone. She had sent Anya who had been the only other person to be close to her away from her side leaving her lonely in the capitol and the confinements of her title. Forming the coalition had required of her to work from before dawn until after dusk and if she had not been swept up with meetings, she had trained. There had been absolutely no leisure time for her and she had preferred it that way. Free time gave her the opportunity to think and on days where she had not fallen totally drained into her bed, she had downed a sleeping aid to numb her mind, unable to face the endless demons hunting her mind.

So much had changed since Skykru had fallen from space and Marie literally had stumbled into both of their lives. Lexa had never expected to reconcile the bond to her former mentor and now they were closer than ever. She long outlived the life expectation of a commander and had achieved what no commander before her had; she had united the clans under one peaceful banner. She would have never believed anyone who would have told her a year ago that she would now be sitting in her chambers utterly relaxed and watching a child braid her former mentor’s hair.

“Lexa, look!” Marie’s excited voice pulled Lexa from her thoughts and she closed the book she had given up on reading to inspect the girl’s results. She must have been lost in her thoughts for longer than she had anticipated; Marie had obviously loosened Anya’s hair again and started over and the results now actually passable.

The commander nodded in silent approval and saw Anya opening her eyes again and looking up at her with a critical expression. The general obviously thought she was falsely praising their charge who smiled proudly. Anya let her fingers run over the braids in her hair and nodded with an approving expression as well and the girl now positively beamed with pride.

In the morning Marie sat patiently while Alira braided her hair in an elaborate fashion and was reasoning with Lexa why she wanted to also have some war paint on her face now.

The general watched the discussion with an amused smirk on her face. Lexa tried to explain to Marie that they were in fact not going to wear war paint at all but rather a special ceremonial paint. Marie quickly corrected her plea and now asked for the ceremonial paint instead. After a few minutes of the girl’s endless pleas Lexa relented and after applying her own paint which was mostly done in light colours turned to the girl and applied a few streaks of white paint around her grey eyes.

Marie was happy to be handed a light tunic and warm leggings instead of her normal gear and a silver belt kept the wide tunic around her body. The commander and general were still dressed in armour but lighter armour than they usually wore and it was done it brighter colours as well. A few small white flowers had been inserted into their braids as well. Lexa’s red sash was still in place and contrasted starkly with the otherwise bright attire she wore.

Anya had explained to her that the ceremonies for the bonding would start soon. Marie was surprised to see that the first part of a bonding consisted of a kind of cleaning ritual. She had first thought they would need to watch Lincoln and Octavia bath but it seemed to be more symbolic than anything else.

Marie had never been to a wedding ceremony on the Ark so she had no idea what customs would come from the Ark and which were truly from the grounders. Octavia was a bundle of nerves when they met and Clarke was trying to reassure her that everything would go over well. Indra had stood behind them, the most expressive Marie had ever seen her. Octavia seemed to pull herself together slightly when she noticed the commander’s presence and Clarke only shortly glanced at them, smiling slightly at Marie.

Although Lincoln seemed more controlled in his emotions it was still obvious that the man was excited with the way his eyes shone.

Marie watched the Skykru delegation hover at the side unsurely of where their place was. After the cleaning ceremony of which Marie did not understand the meaning the group left the tower and gathered on a podium in front of the tower. Many inhabitants of Polis had already gathered there to witness the bonding and the atmosphere was buzzing with excitement. They had been fortunate with the weather and the snow storm had passed by the capitol and the weather had cleared. It was still icy cold outside but the wind had mostly stopped making it bearable again. Everything had been prepared to hold the ceremony inside the tower for the case that the weather would not clear.

Marie had no idea where the grounders had found the flowers which now were used to decorate the podium but the effect was beautiful. The wood of the podium had been scrubbed clean of the blood as good as possible and a red carpet covered it instead.

Marie heard a woman singing a methodical tune and she watched how Lexa stood at the centre of the podium with Lincoln facing her. A few moments nothing happened and Marie had already turned to Anya to ask for they were waiting for, when first Indra stepped out of the tower and a moment later Bellamy led Octavia outside.

Her hair was braided beautifully and a few streaks of bright paint adorned her face. While she smiled brightly in obvious excitement, Bellamy’s smile looked slightly strained. The young man still wore his usual dark clothing from the Ark, while Octavia was also dressed in a kind of bright armour.

The woman’s voice singing the song broke off when Octavia finally stood next to Lincoln, both gazing at each other in silence for a moment before Lexa cleared her throat. Bellamy had given Octavia’s hand over to Lincoln and nodded at the man mutely with a strained smile.

The commander addressed the pair in a clear voice which easily carried over the whole crowd. Indra stood behind Octavia while Nyko stood behind Lincoln. Bellamy had stepped down from the podium and joined ranks with the rest of Skykru and Marie saw Kane patting him on the shoulder with an encouraging smile. It was obvious the young man was still not happy about the situation but had obviously recognized that his sister’s mind was not to be swayed. 

Lexa held a short speech addressing the crowd as well, stressing that this bonding would hopefully be the first of many on their way to true peace and unity between the clans. It was obvious by the proud shine to Lexa’s green eyes how happy she was to be able to hold a ceremony for such a happy occasion, instead of executions which usually took place on the podium.

Marie listened with interest how Lincoln and Octavia basically pledged their souls to each other, validating the bond through a vow of blood. Lexa sliced both of their palm until blood visibly flowed from the cuts. The commander placed both their hands together, mixing their blood and bound their linked hands together with a white piece of fabric declaring them bonded by blood after they repeated a short vow. While Lincoln spoke the vow in Trigedasleng, Octavia recited the words in English choosing to honour her origins. Indra and Nyko had put their hands onto their joined ones and spoke a few words, confirming the vows.

The people who watched the bonding cheered once their hands had been connected, fell silent instantly when one of them said something and started their cheers again.

Even though Bellamy had obviously still been hesitant towards the bonding of her sister, his dark eyes were shining suspiciously as if they swam in tears. He stepped back onto the podium and handed a small box over to Lincoln with a silent nod and smiled at Octavia.  The small box obviously contained traditional wedding bands from the Ark, Marie had no idea how they had procured the jewellery but Octavia seemed touched deeply by the gesture.

Although Marie could not deny that the whole bonding ceremony had been beautiful she became bored soon. After the blood vow, they had exchanged the wedding bands from the Ark and then Octavia and Lincoln were escorted back into the tower to receive matching tattoos. Clarke who had designed the tattoos followed them to explain the design to the people making the markings.

“What happens now?” the girl lowly asked Anya. She had started to feel the cold even under her coat and she had tried to inch as close to the woman as possible.

“We wait” Anya answered easily and watched the girl’s face fall at her answer. She pulled the girl closer to her to shield her slightly from the cold.

The woman who had sung before had started up again and Lexa stepped back from the centre of the podium conversing lowly with Indra.

The singing had seemed to be a sign for the festive part to start and drink and food was brought out of the tower quickly by a long row of handmaidens.

Lexa officially opened the banquet once everything was ready. “We stay outside?” Marie asked in a slightly higher tone and to her internal horror Anya nodded mutely. With a hand on the girl’s back she guided their charge to follow the commander.

Lexa spoke a few words with Markus Kane and Indra. The commander noted with satisfaction that a friendship seemed to blossom between them.

The feast was impressive and the most impressive part had been the bear’s head which had been placed in the middle of the long table. A blanket would be made out of the bear’s fur as a gift for the newly bound pair.

It seemed to take forever for Lincoln and Octavia to return. The young woman was noticeably paler but her smile was almost blinding in its intensity.

Indra and Nyko were the first to welcome the pair under loud applause and cheers from the complete gathering.

The commander congratulated them afterwards and after that people seemed to stand in a queue to speak their own words of congratulation to them.

It was obvious Octavia and Lincoln were slightly overwhelmed by the positive response. But Lexa and Anya both noticed enough faces which were not celebrating the union among the ambassadors, but looked rather sceptical about the bonding.

Marie winked slightly at Roan, once she spotted the man among the crowd. Her kind smile froze slightly when she noticed Echo standing next to the prince. The woman’s features were expressionless but her eyes bore in on Anya in obvious anger. Marie spotted a few bruises on her face and her right arm was bandaged heavily. The girl frowned up at Anya while the general met the assassin’s angry stare without batting an eye.

 

 

 

Chapter 133

The feast went on for quite a long time and Marie was surprised to see a lot of the grounders actually dancing with each other. A group of grounders were playing music on drums, flutes and a strangely looking stringed instrument. Marie even saw Indra and Kane dancing with each other, but when she asked Anya or Lexa if they would dance, both denied her vehemently. She did not have any experience dancing. At the last feast of the Unity Day on the Ark her mother had already been sick and she could not remember a special occasion before. Her parents had not owned any players to listen to old music and their quarters had been much too small to really move much anyway. But watching the others dance, she wanted to try it out as well, it looked like the dancers were having fun.

Marie pouted visibly and was surprised into speechlessness for a moment, when Gustus proposed to dance with her instead. The girl squealed in delight, while Lexa watched the burly man with a raised brow. Gustus only inclined his head, a silent challenge in his dark eyes, but only amusement flashed through the commander’s eyes.

Marie had a great time dancing with Gustus, although the man was much bigger than her and had been totally awkward at first, it was obvious he must have probably already been in a similar situation with Sierra, when his daughter had been younger. After some time even, the burly man laughed freely. Although there was a sort of bittersweet melancholy in his dark eyes, it was still obvious he enjoyed himself.

Anya watched Gustus twirl Marie around himself to the beat of the music with a slight smirk on her face. Marie’s delighted giggles easily carried over to them and the girl’s grey eyes were twinkling with obvious joy.

Lexa watched their charge with Gustus for a few moments as well before loud arguing caught her attention. Clarke and her mother were facing each other while they almost glared at each other and their voices grew in volume with every word; Markus stood slightly between them obviously trying in vain to make them see reason and cease their argument for now. The commander furrowed her brow as more and more people around the Skykru delegation stopped their own conversations and watched the argument with growing interest.

The commander’s slight smile vanished from her lips and her features were hard as she stood from the chair she had been sitting on. The festivities had not gone on long enough for the argument to be fuelled by the overconsumption of alcohol and it was disrespectful against the newly bonded pair to carry on fighting now.

“You can finally come home, Clarke” Abby’s words were the first Lexa could make out clearly.

Lexa felt a sudden flash of inexplicable worry at the prospect that Clarke might decide to finally give in and return to her people. She felt the urge to step in and simply demand Clarke’s continued presence in the capitol, but she was aware that it was not her place to do such. Even though the blonde woman and she had barely had any real contact in the last few weeks, the commander still rested easier knowing that the other woman was safe and close. She knew she would start worrying about the blonde’s safety as soon as she stepped foot out of the capitol.

“You don’t get it, do you?” Clarke’s angry voice pulled Lexa from her thoughts and the commander stepped closer to the pair. Bellamy had already joined the three of them and had his arms crossed over his chest. From his stance and his expression, it was easy to interpret that he wholeheartedly supported Abby’s wish for Clarke to return to her people.

“Why do you prefer living here instead of with your friends?” Bellamy asked in an accusing tone; apparently, he had taken Clarke leaving personally.

Clarke’s blue eyes blazed angrily and she retorted “I have enough! I enjoy being here and working with the healers. They do not look at me, as if I am not enough. To you I am never enough, no matter what I do!”

“Honey, I want you to come home with us” Abby tried to convince her daughter in an almost pleading tone “I am sure you have outstayed your welcome by now”.

Lexa furrowed her brow in annoyance; Abby’s word was not true, neither was it her place to speak them. “Clarke is welcomed as long as she pleases to stay in the capitol” the commander interjected, her voice steely and some of the onlookers had averted their gazes when Lexa looked around with hard eyes.

“But …” Abby opened her mouth to retort something, while Clarke looked at the commander. Her blue eyes were surprised for a moment, before gratitude flashed through them. Markus had taken one of Abby’s arms and shook his head signalling to the woman to stop their argument. They had already garnered too much attention.

“Apologies, commander” Markus addressed the leader officially with apologetic eyes.

Lexa inclined her head and taxed Abby with a silent glare.

“Can I have a word with you, commander?” Clarke asked, looking for a way to get away from her mother where she could not be followed immediately.

Lexa raised a brow in silent question but inclined her head and turned away from the Skykru delegation leading Clarke a slight distance away. The commander faced the blonde young woman in silence waiting for her to state her mind.

Clarke seemed to blush under her mute stare and defiance flashed over her features as she glanced back over her shoulder at her mother. “I had just wanted to get away” the blonde confessed with a slight shrug.

The commander furrowed her brow, unsure how to interpret this turn of events. None of her people would dare to demand anything from her in the form she had just heard Abby demanding Clarke’s return to Skykru and speaking to her in such a way could very well end deadly. In the commander’s mind, Clarke also demanded respect as a leader and it was painfully obvious that Skykru lacked any appreciation for the blonde woman.

She had internally hoped, that Clarke had truly wished to speak with her and she was unsure if she should feel affronted at being utilized by the other woman, but Lexa also felt a slight measure of amusement at the girl’s move to evade her mother, who was clearly intimidated by her as the commander. Weeks had passed since Clarke had returned to the capitol known to everyone as Wanheda and slowly life was returning into her blue eyes, replacing the cold hatred. She dared not to hope that understanding and tenderness would once again illuminate those blue eyes and Lexa averted her eyes from Clarke’s face at having been caught staring at her in silence for a few moments.

They were interrupted by a young girl dressed in a tattered cloak approaching Clarke and addressing her in rapid Trigedasleng. It was obvious by Clarke’s frown that she did not understand a word from the girl’s hurried plea.

When Lexa cleared her throat loudly, the girl’s head whipped over to her and her face paled at recognizing the commander. The girl quickly apologized rapidly, but Lexa waved her off asking her instead what she had wanted from Wanheda. The girl hurried to explain, that her mother was in the middle of childbirth but something was not right.

Lexa translated the girl’s word for Clarke and the blonde frowned for a moment, before her eyes flashed with determination and she nodded telling to the commander that she would go with the girl to see to the woman. Lexa furrowed her brow in worry; her mind was conditioned to always be suspicious and she did not wish for Clarke to leave unprotected and on her own; so, Lexa accompanied them together with Ryder.

Clarke’s frown showed openly that she did not understand or share the commander’s distrust but she did not voice her disagreement knowing that doing so would only halt their arrival at the woman who needed her help.

The girl led them through the streets hurriedly. Her mother’s loud screams already resonated through the empty streets, as most of the citizens had gathered around the tower to celebrate the bonding ceremony.

They lived in one of the ruins of the old world and the room they inhabited was fairly small. The windows in the ruin had long ago shattered and the girl led them into a room which was boarded up with wooden planks blocking out almost all-natural light.

The girl hurried over to her mother, who was lying on a mattress made of straw. A long skirt was covering her legs and a huge patch of blood was already visible. The woman looked up with eyes crowded with pain, but she obviously still recognized the commander and was struggling to get up from the bed to bow to her leader. It was obvious, that the woman had been in labour for some time now; her skin was pale and clammy with sweat. Clarke instantly feared the woman might die in childbed if the baby was not born soon; she doubted a C-section was a possibility in this unsanitary surrounding.

Clarke rushed over to her and pushed her upper body back down with firm hands. Lexa was slightly surprised to hear the healer address the woman in Trigedasleng. Her language skill was lacking very much, but it was enough to have her understand them. The commander had not known that the blonde woman had started to learn their language at all, but it made sense if she wished to work as a healer; not all citizens in the capitol spoke the language of the warriors.

Lexa stood back feeling oddly out of place as Clarke worked with the woman. Ryder assisted her with a grunt with heating some water and handing over linens while Lexa just waited in silence, hands clasped behind her back. Clarke had already been to a few births in the capitol. She had never seen, how life had been brought into the world on the Ark, but her mother had taught her the theory; she had been surprised by the knowledge of the healers in Polis. They had shown her how to feel the swollen baby bump for the position of the child within the mother. She instantly felt that the baby was not lying correctly and the woman would never be able to give birth like that. It took her long torturous moments to slowly make the body of the baby turn, still in the womb. Clarke’s brows furrowed as what she could feel still did not feel correct, but there was nothing she could do now, besides trying to get the woman to push with her contractions. The contractions were visibly getting weaker as the woman’s strength was waning with every passing moment. The wait seemed to stretch forever until Clarke assured the woman that she could finally see the head of the baby. Clarke was constantly reassuring the woman that it would be over quickly now and encouraged her to continue. Lexa internally admired the way Clarke worked as a healer; her blue eyes were determined and the haunted shadows that were ever present in them after the Mountain were gone for the moment. The commander still thought that the blonde had the spirit of a leader, but it was obvious her heart was called into healing others.

It took another long moment until the wails of a baby filled the room. The woman sank down on the mattress in outer exhaustion, but she was smiling. Clarke cradled the new-born infant in her arms after she severed the umbilical cord. She kept careful eyes on the woman seeing if she bled extremely much and might be suffering from internal bleeding, but fortunately all looked normal.

Lexa felt a smile tugging at her lips at the sounds of a new life born into their world; she had never witnessed this occasion before, but her smile vanished when Clarke turned and the commander laid her eyes on the infant. The infant’s legs were obviously disfigured. They seemed to be stuck together and were bent at a weird angle explaining the woman’s difficulties during the birth.

Clarke was obviously worried about the infant; she had never seen such a disfigurement in a baby and the commander doubted that the blonde healer would have already come into contact with this particular harsh aspect of their lives. Clarke had shown the baby to the girl, which had fetched them and then to the mother; both were crying now and Clarke cradled the infant a little tighter sensing the sudden sorrow which lay heavy in the small room.

The commander nodded to the woman with a sorrowful expression; both knew what needed to happen now. Ryder had also caught up and took a linen to wrap around the squirming infant; Clarke was visibly hesitant to hand over the baby.

“My mother might be able…” Clarke started to say, but Lexa already shook her head resolutely and after inclining her head to Ryder, the man left the room with the infant which had started to scream shrilly protesting at being handed over.

“What is he going to do with the baby?” Clarke asked and her voice had gotten an octave higher, her blue eyes were wide and Lexa guessed that the other woman would have already guessed the answer, but was unwilling to accept it.

“Ryder will bring the infant into the woods” the commander answered in an even tone. She straightened and nodded once again at the woman who now clung to her daughter. Lexa said a few words of condolence to her and indicated Clarke to follow her outside.

“Into the woods?” Clarke echoed once they stepped outside again; her blue eyes were shining suspiciously as if she could start crying any moment now. The haunted look had also returned to them.

Lexa nodded with a stiff expression “So that nature can reclaim its soul to be reborn again”.

“You are just leaving a child alone in the woods to die?” Clarke nearly screeched in obvious horror and she had gotten several shades paler.

Lexa sighed under her breath and was glad for the absence of listening ears now more than ever. “What would you have me do, Clarke?” the commander asked the healer “Our people cannot afford to care for those too weak to sustain themselves”. It had always been their way to abandon children born with deformities, not everyone honoured this tradition but rather chose to leave the clan’s land and try to fend for themselves and their children in the Dead Zone. No clan would accept such a child in their midst. Although it was sad that a life had to be short like this but their lives were hard enough without the added hassle to feed those unable to contribute.

Clarke gaped at the other woman for a moment, closing and opening her mouth in silence, obviously unable to form words. Her blue eyes were wide and unbelieving.

Lexa thought about the Sky people she had met until now and the only one which had shown signs of a disability had been Raven and that had been caused by a weapon. “What have your people done to infants born with disabilities?” she asked into the heavy silence between them folding her hands behind her back as the commander waited for a response.

Uncertainty flashed over the other woman’s pale features. Now that Clarke thought about it, she actually had no idea what the answer would be. She had never considered why all their children seemed to be born healthily. A cold feeling settled into the pit of her stomach at the realization that her people must have had some system to prevent disabled people from being born in the first place. Still the thought of bringing a defenceless child out into the woods and just leave it there sounded barbaric.

“It might take days for the infant to die…” Clarke uttered after long moments of silence in a quivering tone.

The commander shook her head slightly “It won’t suffer” was all she offered. She knew that Ryder would kill the infant before leaving it alone.

Clarke looked at the other woman in question for a moment, but Lexa’s expression was completely blank and the commander was turning from the ruin intent on returning to feast. They had been gone for much longer than she had anticipated; the sun was already beginning to set. Anya would probably already be wondering where she had gone and none of the ambassadors would dare leave an official gathering before the commander left to retire.

The way back towards the tower passed in silence. It was obvious Clarke was trying to process what had just happened. The commander knew there was nothing she could say to reassure the younger woman and she doubted her counsel would be welcome either way. Although Clarke seemed more relaxed now in her presence and Lexa had been unable to detect anger in her blue eyes; the commander was still unsure about their standing and she did not wish to antagonize the other woman so she kept silent.

The nearer they got to the tower, the louder the music and the sounds of people celebrating became. Lexa hoped that such happy occasions would repeat more often now that the Mountain had been destroyed and there was peace.

The commander watched Clarke heed towards the tower immediately, evading her own people on the way, clearly unwilling to talk to them at the moment and she motioned two warriors to follow the blonde woman and take up guard in front of her quarters keeping everyone out.

She felt her former mentor’s brown eyes settle on her the moment they returned to the base of the tower and although her expression was calm, her gaze was worried. Gustus was still dancing with Marie and the girl’s giggles carried over to her and tugged at the corners of her mouth against her permission. It seemed the girl had not even noticed her prolonged absence and that they would need to instil a higher sense of attention to her surroundings into their charge soon.

Gustus had obviously noticed her absence and return and when she inclined her head towards the tower the burly man stopped his movements and guided the girl back over to Anya. Marie’s blinding smile dimmed slightly, but she followed him willingly and smiled widely at Anya.

The commander congratulated Octavia and Lincoln one more time before she addressed the crowd telling them to enjoy themselves for the rest of the night. 

 

 

Chapter 134

Titus’ POV:

Titus was a creature of habit and tradition. He knew as much and he was watching the developments since the Skykru had fallen down on earth with a constant frown.

He did not like the changes that had taken place since their arrival one bit. The only thing he regarded as positive had been the annihilation of the Mountain and even that had its downfalls. The coalition had been stable because they were facing a shared enemy, now that this enemy had been destroyed the coalition stood on shaky feet.

He had been doubtful about the concept of the coalition even before Lexa had planned to enforce it between the clans. He had doubted her abilities to form this coalition even more; but he had been proven wrong. After four long years of never ending negotiations between the clans who had been open to the idea of the coalition and lastly of wars fought with those who resisted Lexa had managed to get them all to bend to her rule.

Titus looked down at the robe he had been trying to wash for the last several days. The damned colour the nightbloods had used to paint it with was a pain to wash off; they were fading so slowly that his efforts were barely visible. His dark eyes flashed angrily at the reminder of the blonde young girl who had taken up residence inside the commander’s quarters weeks ago.

He was convinced that the children would have never dared to even entertain the idea of “playing a prank” in their minds even less go through with it. Titus had always commanded absolute respect from each single one of them. He did not wish nor need to be liked by them; he needed to teach and guide them and he had done so faithfully for many years. Being restricted in what he was allowed to teach to them now had stung his pride beyond measure. Not a single commander before had dared to interfere with his ways of teachings.

The way the nightbloods had taken an almost instant liking to the girl and her blasted wolf cub was another worry for his mind. He was convinced that any of them would likely keep the Skygirl as their second should Lexa fall in the near future and a new commander would rise.

He could not understand why the commander had insisted to keep the girl in Polis. He had been absolutely sure that sending her away as quickly as possible would have been the most sensible road of action to take, but his counsel had fallen on deaf ears. 

He feared the way his influence on Lexa was declining with each passing day. Titus was aware that Lexa was the wisest vessel the flame had ever had since the first commander, but he feared she was losing her ways.

He had watched Lexa grow into the commander she now was. He had always recognized the great potential the girl had had; in contrast to the previous commander who had been convinced that the scrawny brunette from Trikru could never rise to power.

In his mind it was absolutely unbecoming to a commander to have their second live together this closely as Lexa was now doing with the Skygirl. He gnashed his teeth together in silent anger at the thought of Anya’s return as well.

Although the loss of Costia had nearly crushed Lexa; the commander had risen from the ruins of her heart to become stronger than ever.

The general seemed to take personal pleasure in contradicting his words on every opportunity and he had been relieved when Lexa had finally taken his advice and send all of those she felt personal connections with away. He was not blind and he had seen first-hand that their connection was now stronger than ever. Titus knew he would not be able to convince the commander to send her general away again, no matter what reasons he would argue.

He could watch the commander change in subtle ways everyday now. He had heard the guards whisper amongst themselves of the way the commander was handling her second with soft hands. In his opinion the girl should be moved down in the tower to the floor where other seconds resided and should have a far tighter training schedule. He detested the way Lexa had started to allow the girl to accompany her to almost all meetings or letting her train with the nightbloods in the early hours of the morning before the sun rose.

Even the ambassadors seemed to have mostly taken a liking to the Skygirl after she had lost her timidity around them. He could see the girl smiling kindly even through important meetings and he wondered why the commander and the general were not enforcing a calmer façade on the girl.

Titus had tried to teach the girl himself when it became apparent that no one else would. But it had not ended well for him. With blazing eyes he remembered how the commander had summoned him to the throne room long before the official meetings had been scheduled to start. He had expected to be briefed on the way the commander wanted to deal with the rumours they had heard about a possible coup from queen Nia and had been surprised when the commander had berated him about what he had said to her second. He had mutely gaped at the commander when she told him in an iron voice to let the girl be.

He had tried to reason with the commander in a barely restrained tone that the girl was acting not in the fashion she should but he had been waved off immediately with the clear warning not to do anything about it nor to ever speak about it again.

He was not blind to the way the girl looked at the commander and her general. A look so full of adoration and bonding did not sit well with him. In his mind the girl completely lacked faith and loyalty to the flame and he knew she would chose Lexa and Anya above any duty.

He found it hard to understand why the commander insisted on instigating Skykru into the coalition. Titus was of the opinion that their people had managed to survive and even thrive in a way without the technology Skykru could offer that they surely would not be in need of it now. But it seemed Lexa’s opinion rarely coincided with his own anymore these days.

The two points which worried him most were the Ice Nation nightblood Lexa insisted on keeping in Polis and of course Wanheda.

Although he could admit in the privacy of his own mind that Ontari had surprised him he still did not trust her one bit. It would be way easier to simply execute her and get rid of yet another worry. But it seemed the commander had made up her mind and truly decided to keep her in Polis and train her as yet another novitiate. The only thing he had gotten Lexa to agree on was that letting the Ice Nation girl house with the rest of the conclave was out of question. He had expected a higher amount of aversion from the girl to this condition but as of yet she seemed to have fallen in line a little too easily for his taste.

He had shortly contemplated taking matters into his own hands and simply kill the girl in training, but with the way Lexa had openly threatened to have him replaced as the lead flamekeeper he knew that he needed to keep in her good grace if he wished to remain in Polis.

But at the mere thought of the blonde Skykru leader he felt a vein pop on his forehead in silent anger. He had tried in vain time and time again to convince Lexa to take Wanhead’s power by killing her herself. It was obvious the blonde was no skilled fighter and no one in the coalition would dare to question Lexa’s strength as the commander if she had the added power of Wanheda. But he had failed on every occasion. Changing his tactic he had tried to at least get her to agree to send Wanheda from Polis but Lexa had been steadfast in her offer to let the blonde young woman stay as long as she pleased. Having Wanheda bow to the commander had been a slight gesture and Titus feared it would not be enough should the Ice Nation strike again.

He had had recognized the flash of emotion in Lexa’s green eyes every time the blonde’s name or title was mentioned and Titus felt his heart sink at the realization that deeper feelings connected the two leaders. Wanheda could prove to be the commander’s downfall and he knew he could not actively do anything to have her removed. He had been too open about his dislike for the blonde woman and he knew that Lexa was keeping tracks of his actions these days.

The only sliver of hope he had was that it did not seem that the commander’s feelings were reciprocated by Wanheda and he direly hoped it would remain that way. A romance between the two leaders could shatter the coalition and he would try everything in his power to protect the flame and by thus Lexa.

Titus gave up trying to wash out the residual paint with an annoyed huff for now. He feared the fabric would be stained beyond salvation. The sun was starting to set and he had instructed the guards to escort Ontari out to train her again. The girl’s combat skill were impressive, but she let herself be goaded way too easily, letting her defences drop and solely relying on her strength and speed to strike down her opponent. There were still a few things the girl could learn, if she was willing. And if nothing else he still thought that she needed to be put into her place as often as possible and brutally showing the Ice Nation nightblood that she was in fact not infallible and that her arrogance was not warranted was a task he did take personal pleasure out. While he did not go easy on any on the nightbloods, not believing that it would benefit their progress, he knew that he was attacking Ontari harsher than he did with Aden. So with an almost gleeful look in his dark eyes Titus left his quarters to meet up with the Ice Nation nightblood intent on spilling at least some of her blood.

 

Ontari’s POV:

Ontari nursed a bunch of new wounds she had received from the training session with Titus. She gritted her teeth in silent anger, she was not blind to how much harder the flamekeeper was laying into her during training. She had been convinced that she already knew everything about combat that there was to know. The realization that this was in case not true had been hard on her and a rather painful lesson. But pain was not a new sensation for her, she had learned to blind out any and all pain long ago. It had been a necessary skill to have as she trained under queen Nia.

Back then not all her wounds had stemmed from training for combat. Her queen had been of the opinion that only those lessons would be remembered which had been enforced by pain. Her whole body was littered in the scars of the queen’s lessons.

She startled slightly when the door to her room was pushed open only a second after a knocking sound. Ontari was not used to people actually knocking on her doors; she had never known beforehand when the queen would summon her.

Ontari recognized the woman who entered as the healer who seemed to have been assigned to her. Receiving the regular care of a healer was something else she was unused to. The queen had usually only ordered a healer to look after her if she had been unable to stand and by thus unable to continue training.

In the beginning the healer had explained to her what she intended to do and she had tried to make idle talk with her, but the other woman had stopped trying after Ontari only greeted her with silence.

Ontari waited in utter stillness and silence as the healer treated the long gash on her back. She did not flinch once as the woman pushed a needle and a threat through the wound sewing the flesh back together.

She was left alone soon after and Ontari listened to the shuffling of boots of the guards just outside of her doors. She understood why the commander let her be heavily guarded, but still what she had seen from the commander thus far did not match to what the queen had told her about the Trikru woman.

She had been told that Trikru ruled the coalition exploiting their position of power over the other clans and taking more for their own clan and leaving less for everyone else.

Ontari crumbled the piece of parchment in her first smearing some of her dark blood on it. She had found the letter hidden under her pillow after this training session. Ontari had no idea how or even who had managed to slip the letter into her small room. She wondered if the letter might be a trap from the commander but she somehow doubted that. From what she had seen this far from the commander she seemed to be an honourable woman.

She had read the words scribbled onto the parchment so often that they were almost branded into her mind now. Ontari did not know if she should believe them or if she should even demand to see the commander and pass the letter along to the woman.

The choice of words sounded like words the queen would speak. Harsh and short. Commanding her to be ready. Ontari was aware that her queen would try to have Lexa assassinated but the letter had not contained any definite plan. It was just a reminder not to forget her place.

Huffing in frustration Ontari held the piece of parchment over the small flame of the candle which stood on her table. She watched the letter being consumed by the flames in silence.

Footfalls in the hall outside of her door made her look up. The sounds were too low for an adult and the commander’s second had been to see her before now so Ontari turned to the door and waited. She was still confused way the girl was seeking her out in the first place and why the commander allowed such.

The blonde girl smiled slightly at the guards who had opened the door for her, Ontari could see the smile on her face as the younger girl slipped inside.

Ontari furrowed her brow in silent question why the girl was here. She did not understand why the girl seemed intent to just spent time with her for the simple sake of it. She remembered how the girl had tried to explain to her the concept of “hanging out” with each other and she still did not fully grasp the concept.

The girl immediately started to chatter, telling her enthusiastically about her days training. Ontari listened to the girl’s words glad to hear that Marie’s focus finally had shifted from the bonding ceremony that had taken place ago weeks ago. She had quickly grown tired of hearing Marie talk about it over and over again.

“Lexa told me that I will be going to train with you and the other nightbloods every morning now” Marie told her with a smile.

Ontari nodded mutely. The girl continued to rattle on about her previous combat training session with Aden and she felt a small flash of jealousy in the pit of her stomach. She did not understand her own feelings at the moment. She should be plotting with her queen about how to enthrone the commander and how to get rid of the other nightbloods, but still her attention circled back to the young girl in front of her. Marie had sat down on her bed as if she belonged there. Ontari had never experienced fellowship or friendship like this before and it confused her greatly. She did know the rules of battle and ambush but this was alien to her. She did know the rules of friendship and she somehow feared to lose it again. Although she rarely said much to Marie the girl seemed content enough just to visit her shortly and chitter, all Ontari had to do was listen and nod sometimes.

She was surprised by the freedom Marie had under the commander. Ontari could not remember ever having any leisure time under the queen’s reign.

Ontari heard the footfalls of someone else approaching the door long before her door was pushed open. The younger girl seemed slightly startled and Ontari furrowed her brow, it was obvious Marie was not used to keep track of her surroundings.

The general stood in the door and motioned the blonde girl to follow her. Ontari mutely answered the woman’s nod. Although it was obvious the regal woman was still highly suspicious of her, her brown eyes always became softer as soon as they landed on her second.

She could hear the general speaking with the girl as they left the corridor together. Ontari sighed as she sank down on her bed. Even though the bed was small, it was fairly comfortable. Too comfortable for a bed of a prisoner in her opinion.

Ontari looked out of the small window. The snow had stopped falling for now but she doubted that it would take long for more to fall. The cold season was extremely strong this year and Ontari feared to envision how her people in Azgeda would be faring.

She had briefly spoken with the commander about the Ice Nation. Ontari had been surprised to hear that the commander had sent caravans with goods into the ice. The queen had always claimed that the commander refused any help for the Ice Nation and she now knew those words to be untrue. She could not help but wonder what else might have been lies from the queen’s mouth? She knew that the commander tried to make her see certain things from a new perspective but it was hard for her to think in new ways. Her ways had been literally beaten into her since the day she been able to walk.

The Ice queen ruled her people with an iron fist. Where the people of Polis admired and loved their commander, the Ice Nation feared their queen all too aware that she would sentence them to death for simply looking the wrong way.

A few days ago she had sat in on an open meeting the commander held to listen to the complaints of the common citizens. She had seen people from only the neighbouring clans but Marie had supplied her with the information that before the snow fell more clans had been represented here. Ontari had sat back and watched how the commander handled the complaints gracefully. She had not expected that the commander would take time for such petty matters. She had never seen something similar happen in Azgeda and she doubted queen Nia would have even entertained the idea, she would have probably laughed and cut off the head of whoever had made a complaint.

 

Chapter 135

Four weeks had passed since the bonding ceremony between Lincoln and Octavia. The Skykru delegation had left after four days of the festivities just as they started to die down and the streets became calmer again. The commander had been surprised that the festivities had gone over without a single incident and she wondered how Skykru had managed to stay in line this time, but she was grateful for small wonders like these.

Lexa now always woke Marie up before the sun rise to take the girl with the training session with the older nightbloods. Their charge was improving her skill greatly now every day, but the girl was still grumbling every morning at being woken before the sun.

Lexa smiled softly as the girl grumbled and simply turned onto her stomach when she shook her gently. Anya who had already stood up and was watching from the table shook her head with a smirk tugging at her lips at their charge’s antics.

“Get up, Marie” Lexa said her voice slightly sharper now and the girl opened one grey eye looking up at the commander to judge her expression.

Marie stretched herself under the furs before she rolled over again and crawled out under the furs. Her side had healed completely but a few fresh bruises littered her body. Although she had undeniably improved her skill the training seemed to only get harder as she improved and she doubted she would ever be skilled enough to evade all the blows directed her way in combat training.

“Morning” the girl said with a smile to both of them before she bent down to greet Risha.

“Get ready, Marie” Anya reprimanded their charge and although her eyes were sharp, her eyes were still soft.

Marie complied with an audible sigh and left into the bathroom. When she returned a few moments later Alira had entered the commander’s quarters and brought breakfast for them. The girl smiled brightly at the older woman and smiled even brighter when she spotted a honey cake among the food. She immediately took the small pastry and bit into it with an expression of pure bliss as the sweet taste exploded in her mouth.

Anya pointed the wolf cub to return to the place in front of the fire place. The general had spent the last weeks with trying to teach the animal some basic behaviour.  She had succeeded at least partly but her efforts were made null every time Marie called for the cub while they were eating and of course the animal then always chose to totally disregard her commands.

The girl sat down on the sofa next to Anya practically leaning into the woman’s body as she munched on the pastry. Anya just rolled her eyes mutely at the girl but adjusted her position so that the girl could sit more comfortably.

Lexa sat on a stole with a straight back while Alira quickly wound her hair into her usual intricate braids.

“How long until the snow melts?” Marie asked after she had finished the pastry.

“The cold season may last for a few moons to come” the commander answered as she took a sip from a cup of tea.

“Are we going to see the other clan lands then?” Marie continued to question. She had heard Lexa discuss with Titus that she planned to travel to neighbouring clans after the snow melted and she remembered that Lexa had promised to show her the sea sometime.

“We?” Anya checked in a sarcastic tone with a raised brow slightly surprised by their charge’s presumption.

Marie’s features showed honest confusion at the question and she slightly tilted her head and glanced over to the commander.

Lexa smirked faintly but her voice was kind as she answered “We might, yes. But it depends on when queen Nia will make her move”. The commander’s expression got sober again at her last words. Lexa and Anya were both getting slightly antsy as nothing seemed to happen and all they heard were vague rumours.

Marie pouted slightly at the answer. The girl did not like the thought that someone was just waiting to plot Lexa’s assassination.

Lexa did not let the girl wallow in her thoughts for long before she stood and by thus efficiently ended the breakfast. Anya would be joining them this morning on the training field and the general handed their charge her coat before dressing warmly herself.

It was still dark outside when they left the tower together. Risha preceded the small group running a distance ahead before waiting for them, all the while wagging her tail in obvious delight. The streets were still mostly deserted, only a few guards patrolled the streets.

Marie yawned wide and giggled under her breath as her breath became visible in the cold air.

The place they trained in was a small clearing framed by a few old ruins. Marie liked the place but Anya and Lexa both kept looking to the ruins regularly to check if they might be being watched.

The group of nightbloods consisting of Aden, Kato and Thalu already waited for them as Ontari was being escorted towards them as well by two guards.

Marie nodded to all of them and was handed a staff by Anya.

The training went on for some time and soon Marie had discarded her coat and felt sweat tickle down her back sticking her shirt to her back uncomfortably. 

After having trained with Aden for what felt like hours Marie now stood back slightly and watched Anya spar with Ontari. Lexa oversaw Aden and Kato facing each other.

Marie scratched Risha behind her ear while she watched. The sun was slowly starting to ascend bathing everything into a golden glow.

Marie frowned when she suddenly saw Ontari pause in her movements looking passed Anya somewhere and her dark eyes seemed wide. The Ice Nation nightblood turned slightly from the general who huffed in annoyance but also turned to look what had caught her attention.

Everything seemed to have suddenly turned into slow motion. Marie first looked in the direction in which Anya and Ontari were looking. Her grey eyes widened when she spotted a hooded a figure standing in one of the ruins. There was a bow in her hand and a second later an arrow flow away from the figure. Marie whipped her head around as she heard the arrow whizz by, from the corner of her eye she saw Anya turning as well shouting at Lexa and the others to get down. But the general’s warning had come too slow and the arrow found its target with a brutal thwacking sound.

“Leexxxaaaa!!!” Marie screamed loudly, voice shrill with horror. The arrow had lodged itself somewhere in the commander’s chest and the woman was visibly faltering in her step, just as another arrow was suddenly shot from another ruin. The second arrow burrowed itself deeply in the commander’s back and Lexa fell to her knees just as she had broken the arrow sticking out of her chest.

Marie ran over to the commander’s huddled over form. Her screaming must have been loud enough to alert some guards. As Marie hurried over to Lexa she looked at Ontari as she passed the older girl. For a second it looked like Ontari might contemplate attacking Aden who stood nearest to her, but as the guards approached the girl let her sword sink down.

Anya seemed torn between trying to follow the assassins and helping Lexa. But as the guards immediately tried to follow the assassins the general strode over to the commander.

Lexa was still kneeling and conscious but it was obvious that she must be in great pain. Marie feared what would happen when the arrows would be removed.

The general quickly pulled Lexa up leaning most of her weight on her own body and almost pulled the younger woman back towards the tower. The commander desperately needed the attention of healers. Anya felt Lexa’s blood seep from the entry wound on her back and she felt her own heart beat faster at the unbidden thought that the wounds might prove to be fatal.

The nightbloods followed the commander with mostly downtrodden expression. All of them had gone a few shades paler, they had never seen Lexa being wounded this gravely and the conclave was suddenly a very probably outcome.

At the base of the tower they ran into Clarke who had been on the way to visit a patient. The Skykru healer stopped in her tracks as she spotted the broken shaft of the arrow in the commander’s chest and another arrow protruding from her back.

“Oh, my … Lexa” she exclaimed audibly with widened eyes before her healer instincts seemed to kick in and her expression hardened “The arrows need to be removed immediately” she said, desperately hoping that they had not pierced any vital organs or might be poisoned as well.

Marie seemed close to tears as she numbly followed Anya now almost carrying Lexa towards the elevator. The general barked a few orders at the guards who hastened to obey; bringing Ontari back to her room, alerting Titus and bringing the rest of the nightbloods into their quarters and to detain them there.

Lexa groaned audibly as Anya laid the commander down on her bed. Titus had followed them into the quarters and hovered behind the bed slightly.

Clarke hurried to get her hands clean to pull out the arrows but her hands were visibly shaking. Marie stood behind the bed and her breathing was elated and her grey eyes widened in horror.

Titus came into the commander’s quarters in a flurry of robes and the bald man’s features were relatively open for once and he seemed to share the same horror Marie felt.

The girl watched with widened eyes how Clarke first apologized to Lexa and as the commander nodded then with one jerk pulled out the arrow from the back.

Lexa paled instantly as blood suddenly gushed out of the entry wound. Clarke was loudly cursing as she tried to press something on the small wound, muttering something about a teared vessel.

The bright furs were coated quickly with the dark blood of the commander and Marie was shaking beside the bed unable to do anything to help. It was obvious Lexa was barely conscious anymore; her green eyes seemed clouded by pain and exhaustion.

It quickly became obvious that Clarke was not able to find the actual source of the bleeding. The arrow had obviously struck very deep inside Lexa’s body and she was unable to reach the teared up vessel; Lexa had groaned in obvious pain as Clarke had tried to search for it, feeling the wound with thin tweezers.

Titus suddenly seemed to have gotten pale and all collected. He dipped a finger inside the commander’s black blood drawing a line down his forehead with it, as he removed a small metal case from his robes. Marie watched in silent horror as he removed a small scalpel from it stepping closer to the bed and suddenly Marie remembered the flame and she gasped audibly.

Anya turned at the girl’s loud gasp and her brown eyes narrowed at the approaching flamekeeper. She had hoped that the wound would be easy to treat but it seemed like Lexa could actually die. In the utter chaos the general had completely forgotten about their charge and as her eyes landed on the pale girl she remembered the way the flowers had stood unharmed again after Marie had touched them.

Clarke looked totally desperate right now. She still tried to stop the blood flow but it was obvious that the commander was losing way too much blood right now. “You’re not allowed to die, Lexa” the healer said vehemently to the commander, commanding her to stay awake and alter; she knew that it was unlikely for Lexa to wake up again should she lose consciousness. “I need your spirit to stay where it is” she said, voice almost pleading now.

Anya intercepted Titus way knocking the scalpel from her hands. The flamekeeper looked at her with a shocked frown, the man had obviously not expected her to step into his way.

“No!” Anya thundered loudly and motioned for Marie to come nearer; she was aware of what Titus was planning to do and she could not allow him to perform the ascension ceremony. She saw Marie’s eyes widen with realization as well, it seemed the girl had forgotten her talent in the blur of shock as well.

Titus was livid now and Anya fought with him for a moment. She managed to knock the man with the handle of her dagger of his head, it was not enough to knock him out but he was at least dazed and kneeling on the floor.

Gustus was unsure of who to help at the moment. He had wished not to have to witness Lexa’s death for many years to come and the suddenness of the attack had surprised him.

“What are you doing?!” Clarke screamed at Anya as the general turned and simply ripped the second arrow from the commander’s body so that even more blood left her already weakened body. Lexa’s only response was another groan, it was obvious her strength was waning quickly now.

The general nearly pulled Marie over to the bed just as Titus stood on visibly wobbled feet.

Marie looked at Anya with widened eyes and her fingers shook visibly as she stretched them out to touch Lexa’s chest where one arrow had hit her. She felt the tumble in her mind fall silent immediately as calmness settled over her and Marie’s eyes closed.

Clarke, Titus and Gustus watched how the girl’s hand pressed to the commander’s chest suddenly seemed to glow on its own. Lexa hissed and her face contorted in obvious pain. A moment later Marie put her second hand to the commander’s back and the bleeding seemed to stop immediately.

When the girl pulled away her face was calm before she opened her eyes. Lexa had set up just as Marie launched herself at the commander, tears already streaming down her cheeks.

Anya sank down on the edge of the bed and looked between Clarke, Titus and Gustus. The burly man’s dark eyes were widened in obvious disbelief and his mouth seemed to hang slightly open in shock.

The flamekeeper stood almost frozen in front of the huge bed while Lexa seemed to catch her breath and enveloped the shaking girl in her arms, banding looks with Anya mutely, before her eyes fell on Clarke.

The blonde still kneeled on the bed and was looking between her hands which were coated in black blood and the commander’s back. She blinked in confusion and her mind must be whirling to decipher what had just happened. Her blue eyes suspiciously swam in moisture as if she was on the verge of tears.

Lexa tightened her arms around Marie minutely feeling Clarke’s hand on her back probably to look at the exit wound.

Anya pried the girl away from Lexa carefully and enveloped their charge in her own arms when finally let go of the commander.

Clarke lifted the commander’s shirt and inspected her head. The woman shook her head in utter disbelief “How is that possible?!” she asked with a shaking voice.

The commander’s back looked completely unharmed, no sign left behind of the gushing wound. Only a very pale scar was visible and Clarke needed a moment to actually find it. Her fingers shook notably against Lexa’s skin as she gingerly probed at the skin.

“Everything is healed, Clarke” Lexa said and her voice and poise was strong and calm as ever.

They seemed to stare at each other in silence for some time. While Lexa looked calm and collected it was obvious Clarke was anything but calm. A thunderstorm of emotion seemed to rage through her.

Titus’ dark eyes focused on Marie and his face was still showing his confusion. “This has happened before?” he asked.

No one answered him for a moment, before Lexa looked away from Clarke and stood from the bed. The blonde woman jumped up obviously intent to hold her back, but Lexa merely smirked at her for a moment before she turned from the other woman and faced her former teacher.

“Yes, it has” she answered simply waiting for him to make the connection between the poisoned dagger.

“She must be blessed by the spirit” the bald man mumbled after a moment and his face looked almost reverent, before his dark eyes flashed “The dagger…”

“No harm has been done” the commander interjected in a decisive tone before the flamekeeper could decide to advance on the girl. Marie sat with her face buried against Anya’s neck and her whole body still shook with deep sobs. Anya’s fingers carded through her blonde hair reassuringly while her brown eyes fell on the furs coated in the dark blood.

“Who has witnessed what has happened?” the commander asked. They would need to tread carefully now or Marie’s talent could become public knowledge and by thus painting an even bigger target on her back.

“A few guards” Anya answered “But word will have spread. The tower is under lockdown”.

Lexa visibly sighed. If they wished to keep her secret she would need to act wounded even though she was healthy again. The risk that someone would question what had happened was too great otherwise. Her green eyes took in the amount of dark blood on the furs; she had been closer to death than she thought.

“Can she heal anyone?” Titus asked as his dark eyes were still fixed on Marie’s form.

“No” Lexa answered quickly and saw a frown appear on her old teacher’s face.

“If word spreads about this…” the bald man started.

“Word about her talent cannot spread” the commander reasoned calmly; they would be unable to protect Marie from those wishing to either exploit her talent or to take these powers for themselves.

The flamekeeper nodded as Lexa commanded “Go to the conclave and tell them that I will survive. Handle the ambassadors as well”.

The flamekeeper nodded in agreement again and the commander could see honest relieve in the man’s dark eyes before he turned and left the room.

She also nodded to Gustus and was slightly surprised as the burly man came closer to her. The man looked deeply into her eyes as he squeezed her shoulder in silence. Lexa faintly smiled at him before he pulled back and returned to the door to guard the commander’s quarters.

Lexa looked at the arrows lying discarded on the furs, still strained with her blood. If they wished to keep up the image of an injury it would be easier if she actually were injured in a way. Making up her mind Lexa quickly took up the broken part of the arrow and placed it on the place on her chest where it had been before, with one strong push she let the tip pierce her skin again.

Marie was not seeing what was going on as Anya was still trying to calm the girl down and the general’s expression was grim as she watched Lexa wound herself again; she had already understood why it needed to be done.

Clarke had obviously not caught up with the commander’s way of thinking and looked at her in utter horror “What are you doing?!” her voice had a screeching quality to it.

Lexa visibly panted slightly as she pulled out the arrow again, she had not pushed it in deeply but deep enough for the wound to need a few days to heal completely. She would have asked Clarke to repeat the same process on her back, but the horror in her blue eyes made the commander rethink her decision and she turned to Anya instead. The general took the arrow with pursued lips, leaving one arm curled around Marie, she quickly pushed the arrow’s tip into Lexa’s flesh on the commander’s back.

Lexa’s green eyes were fixed on Clarke as Anya wounded her and the healer’s blue eyes seemed impossibly wide in her pale features. She tried not to hiss at the burning sensation as her general ripped the arrow out of the shallow wound again.

“I should dress that for you” Clarke said after a few moments and her voice shook notably. The commander nodded mutely and took off her shirt with tightly clenched together lips; although the wounds were not deep they still hurt.

 

 

Chapter 136

Clarke had excused herself quickly after winding bandages around Lexa’s torso. It was obvious the blonde woman was deeply shaken by what she had seen.

Lexa had tried to reassure her that her people would be protected by the next commander but to her great confusion her words seemed to have only worsened the blonde’s state of mind and the healer had almost stormed out of the commander’s quarters in a huff.

Lexa looked behind the retreating woman with confusion written over her face before she turned back to the bed and her eyes landed on the blood strained furs; they would need to be removed before they tainted even more of the furs beyond saving. She knew how hard the black blood was to wash out.

The commander hoped that Titus would be able to reassure the nightbloods that she would survive, knowing all too well how burdensome the looming conclave would be to the children.

The question of who had tried to assassinate her would need an answer as well. She guessed to already know the answer and it was probable that the culprits were send by queen Nia. She internally wondered why Ontari did not seem to have taken the chance to either finish her off or at least to start killing off the other nightbloods, making the conclave for herself easier afterwards.

“Anya” the commander addressed her general and their eyes connected instantly “Find out if the assassins have been caught” she ordered in a calm tone.

The other woman nodded immediately but it took her a moment to get Marie to let go of her. The emotions were clearer and deeper in the general’s brown eyes than Lexa had anticipated but she was much more controlled than Marie was. The girl looked shell shocked and her grey eyes looked almost haunted in her pale face as she looked at the furs strained with the commander’s black blood next to her.

“I will send a handmaid to have the furs removed” the general said with a tight smile to their charge before she strode through the room and left.

Marie looked almost lost sitting on the edge of the huge bed and Lexa saw her starting to scratch at her hands with widened eyes which did not seem to see anything at all. Risha had moved over to her human and laid her muzzle on the girl’s legs lowly whining under her breath for the girl’s attention, but Marie did not seem to even realize it.

Lexa shortly glanced at the door through which Clarke had vanished so quickly, almost as if the other woman had been fleeing from something. Her reaction puzzled Lexa greatly. As a healer the blonde would have been confronted with death and grave wounds before so there was no logical explanation to her reaction. It looked almost as if the blonde had been this shocked because the wounded was someone she cared for. Lexa vehemently shook her head, banishing the thought as quickly as it had risen in her mind. She looked back to Marie and Risha’s whining had grown to a low almost howl. Red blood was beginning to gather in the places where Marie had started to scratch open the skin of her hands.

The commander felt the tug of the freshly caused wounds in her body, but the wounds were shallow and would heal quickly. Although she trusted her guards and handmaidens she still did not wish for them to know what had transpired here, with every additional soul who knew of Marie’s talents the girl would only be in graver danger.

Lexa walked the slight distance back to the bed and crouched down in front of Marie, shooing Risha away with a gesture. With an almost offended sounding howl the wolf relented and made place for the woman.

“Marie” Lexa calmly addressed their charge, placing her own hands over Marie’s and by thus stopping her frantic scratching for the moment. The girl seemed to stare right through her and Lexa was worried by her unresponsive state. Tears were still running down the girl’s cheeks, but she cried in absolute silence now. Her face had visibly paled and Lexa thought that the girl looked almost physically drained.

Little star” Lexa tried again after long moments of gently letting her fingers glide over the girl’s knuckles and not getting any response from her.

Marie blinked a few times, before she sobbed loudly and almost gasped for air, as if waking up from haze.

“It is alright” Lexa reassured squeezing the girl’s hands between her own.

“You…” Marie gasped, gulping in huge bouts of air “…you almost…”

“Sssh…” Lexa soothed in a gentle tone “Hush, Marie”.

The commander lightly pulled at the girl’s hands pulling her up from the bed and guiding her around it with slow steps, feeling the bandages shift slightly over her torso. Although she did feel some discomfort she was aware that the actual wounds would have hurt far worse.

She pushed the blood strained furs over the edge of the bed before Lexa sat down and pulled Marie down with her. The girl instantly nestled into her side curling up there; she had removed her armour before Clarke dressed her torso and had redressed into a fresh pair of soft pants and a lose shirt that hung off her shoulders, letting the bandages peek out on purpose.

Lexa felt the girl’s tears dampening her neck, but she only held Marie close in silence, letting her hand caress her back soothingly. It still seemed to take their charge long moments until she finally cried herself to sleep.

Sometime later a pair of handmaidens entered preceded by Alira. The older woman’s features were riddled with honest worry and Lexa knew she was not necessarily worried about the commander but rather about herself as a person.

Lexa met her probing gaze calmly and inclined her head mutely indicating to the other woman that all was well, and she could cease her obvious worries.

The younger handmaidens gathered the bloody furs silently and carried them out with quick strides, removing the traces of what had happened from the commander’s quarters.

Alira picked up the arrow which Clarke had pulled from her back. Lexa could see her eyes widening as she took in the length of the shaft which was sullied by her black blood, indicating that the arrow had lodged itself deeply within the commander’s body.

“Do you need anything?” the woman asked after swallowing visibly and although she seemed to force her face into calmness, her features did not obey completely and still portrayed her worry for the young commander.

Lexa shook her head with the ghost of a smile tugging at the corners of her mouth. Careful to keep the rest of her body still lest she woke up Marie again.

The handmaiden nodded although reluctance was easy to read on her face, but she knew she had basically been dismissed by Lexa’s denial. Lexa watched the woman leave taking both arrows with her. The arrows themselves had been simple, no carving visible and the feathers stemmed from common birds which could be found in lands of many clans. So, there was no sign of their origin on them.

The girl’s body laid heavy and limp against Lexa’s torso. After Marie had healed her all tiredness had left Lexa’s senses instantly, but she was resigned to wait and offer comfort to their charge.

The commander had no idea how much time had passed before the doors to her quarters were pushed open again; it felt as if she had barely let her eyes fall close. Lexa furrowed her brow as she spotted Clarke stepping foot into her rooms again. The other woman did not have any supplies in hand, so she was obviously not here as a healer. Lexa looked down at Marie and found the girl still asleep, a peaceful and content expression had taken over her features as the child relaxed in slumber, but the silver tracks of her tears were still visible on her cheeks and dark shadows seemed to have formed under her eyes.

Carefully and slowly Lexa entangled herself from Marie, halting for a moment when the girl began to stir even the slightest bit.

The commander stepped over from the bed towards Clarke motioning the other woman to follow her out onto the balcony. She barely felt the coldness of the stones beneath her feet as she stepped outside barefoot. Lexa turned around on the balcony, pulling the door ajar behind them after checking one last time that her charge was indeed still asleep on the bed.

“Marie has done this before?” Clarke repeated the question Titus had already asked some time ago.

Lexa nodded mutely. She doubted Clarke would try to exploit the younger girl’s talent in any way but it was obvious that the healer was still upset and the commander was unsure on how to deal with the other woman at the moment. They had barely seen each other over the last weeks after Lincoln’s and Octavia’s bonding. Lexa had heard that the people of Polis had started to see Clarke as a gifted and kind-hearted woman, seeing a different side of the blonde woman then the legendary Wanheda. She had been sure the blonde was only staying in Polis because she enjoyed acting as a healer and it allowed her to stay away from her own people to whom she obviously still had no wish to return.

“What did Titus mean with “the dagger”?” Clarke asked after it became clear that the commander was hesitant to offer up any additional information. Clarke had spent the last hours in her quarters trying frantically to calm her racing heart and thoughts. She had grown up surrounded by science and there was absolutely no logical explanation to how Marie had been able to completely heal wounds like this or any wounds for that matter. She had read about people gifted with the talent of healing, but that had been fictional stories, or so Clarke had been convinced until now.

Lexa sighed under her breath, deciding to stay honest with the other woman. It might even help Clarke to hear that someone else had held onto a grudge against her person as well. So, Lexa explained what had happened “…so Arla gave Marie a dagger. The blade had been dipped into one of the deadliest poisons known to my people, even an antidote should not be able to save someone poisoned with it. The handmaid had used Marie’s anger and hurt at being handed over at the Mountain and turned it into blind rage” the commander said. She had averted her eyes from Clarke and was looking over the streets of Polis beneath them. “The handmaid brought the message that Marie had asked to see me. I had not seen her conscious since the Mountain” Lexa remembered with an almost bitter expression “I had been at her bedside every night after the meetings finally adjourned, but how should she have known that?” The commander stopped for a moment and felt Clarke’s gaze heavily on her face; she felt almost uncomfortably exposed by her probing stare.

“I called a halt to the meeting and went up to my quarters. Looking forward to finally seeing Marie again. It had almost looked as if Marie’s wounds would be permanent from the Mountain. She caught me off guard with her anger” the commander admitted lowly “The burning hate in her grey eyes surprised me and I did not see the flash of the small blade in her hands until it was almost too late. I took a step back in the last moment, but the blade had still grazed my forearm”.

Lexa stopped again, breathing out a deep sigh as the memory of Marie’s face twisted in hate flashed up in her mind. “I felt the poison running through my veins almost instantly. Marie had no idea what she had done” Lexa said, remembering the girl’s grey eyes widened in horror.

Clarke sucked in a loud gasp of air “She poisoned you?” there was disbelief in her tone.

Lexa shook her head decisively “She had not been aware of the poison on the blade. Arla had convinced Marie that she needed to make me bleed to get revenge for my betrayal” she sighed again and added almost bitterly “I would have gladly offered her some blood.” 

“And she healed you?” Clarke asked obviously uncomfortable with shift in the other woman’s mood.

Lexa nodded “I already felt how my limps got heavy and colder. Breathing got difficult and I felt something tugging at my mind, before it felt as if fire was flowing through my veins. When the burning receded I felt revived, refreshed even. There was no sign of the shallow graze on my forearm.”

Clarke nodded with a thoughtful expression “Can she heal anyone?”

Lexa shook her head “No, she apparently could not heal you”.

“Me?” Clarke echoed with a furrowed brow.

“She tried to heal you after Anya had found you” Lexa explained with a far-away look on her features. She could not push the memory from her mind of Marie almost dying in the medical bay of Arkadia.

Clarke’s blue eyes widened “Her aneurysm was caused by this?” her voice had a slightly shrill quality to it.

Lexa inclined her head “We are not sure. But it seems reasonable” worry flashed over the commander’s features “She seems exhausted right now as well”.

“You almost died” Clarke said after long moments of silence and her tone was faint “I would not have been able to stop the bleeding in time”.

“I am well, Clarke” Lexa reassured and after a moment she added “And as I already told you your people will be protected by the next commander now that Skykru is part of the coalition”. She knew that would become questionable if Ontari or Kato won the conclave, but Lexa was still convinced that Aden would be chosen as the next vessel.

Clarke’s blue eyes flashed with emotion too quick for Lexa to decipher. “For god’s sake, Lexa” she almost thundered “I did not care about the commander dying, I …” she stopped for a moment.

Lexa had turned back to Clarke fully and her green eyes were wide as well, as a furrow settled between her brows. Although she tried to reign in her thoughts and forbid them to stray, the commander instantly hoped to know what the blonde wanted to say. Lexa slightly held her breath in anticipation, aware that Clarke’s next words would be setting the tone to their upcoming conversations.

It seemed as if the stubbornness was draining out of Clarke’s features and Lexa had not seen this softness in the other’s features since the Mountain.

“Dammit Lexa, don’t you understand that I care about you?” the blonde exhaled forcefully, and her blue eyes seemed to search for something in Lexa’s features.

Lexa was trying hard to control her own features, but she doubted she was succeeding completely to mask her emotion. She had not allowed herself to long and dream about the blonde leader to ever feel anything besides hate and anger for her ever again and she hoped her mind had not played a trick on her and Clarke had in fact said, what she thought to have heard.

“You do?” the commander breathed, her voice wavering audibly.

“I do, damn!” Clarke said flicking a stray of hair from her face in obvious annoyance. Her features clearly showed the conflict which was still waging war in her mind.

Lexa swallowed forcefully. There were so many things swirling in her mind that she desperately longed to say to Clarke and yet her lips remained sealed together, afraid whatever she said would unsettle the blonde woman again.

“I have tried so hard to hate you, Lexa” she said, and her blue eyes were burning, the anger resurfacing briefly, and Lexa already steeled herself for the eruption of the other’s anger. “And I did hate you, but it has become so exhausting to hold on to that hate…” her words faded into the harsh wind around them slowly.

Lexa’s green eyes were raw and open when Clarke met her gaze, challenging the commander to say something but Lexa still stayed utterly silent.

“And after watching your blood seep through my fingers and fearing you would be dying on me there…” Clarke said after another long silent moment between them “… I was afraid, Lexa” she admitted “Afraid to lose you, before we could have ever begun”.

Lexa was always so eloquent. She had held what felt like thousands of speeches. She knew how to spur on her warriors, how to speak her condolence to the bereaved, how to handle the ambassadors squabbling amongst themselves. And she internally cursed herself that her words failed her now. She was for probably the first time in her life utterly speechless. In her imagination she would have never come up with what had happened just now, and her mind was still whirling around wildly trying to process Clarke’s change of mind. It sounded almost as if Clarke still believed that something more than friendship could grow again between them. Lexa had not allowed herself to even entertain the mere thought of a romance with Clarke after the Mountain.

It was obvious her continued silence was unnerving to Clarke and impatience was starting to etch itself into the blonde’s features. “Say something, Lexa” the young woman almost pleaded.

“I …” the commander started to say searching frantically for the right words to express what she was feeling.

Clarke exhaled visibly, and she seemed to deflate. She took a step back from the other woman; Lexa had not even realized that they had gotten closer. “I will just leave then” the blonde said in an almost bitter tone laced with resignation.

As she turned around Lexa’s hand shot out and gingerly held her wrist stopping the other woman in her tracks. Clarke turned back around to the commander with an almost hopeful expression.

“I had never dared to believe that you would ever care for me” she admitted honestly to the first thought which flashed through her mind and her voice was uncharacteristically soft.

Clarke’s mouth turned into a slight smile and as she glanced down at her wrist which was still encased in the commander’s fingers, Lexa let go abruptly with a slight blush dusting over her cheeks.

“I would not have thought to ever admit it aloud. Least of all to you” Clarke mused with another sigh. After another moment her face fell slightly “I have still not forgiven you” and her voice sounded almost tinted with regret.

Lexa felt a painful tug in her heart and she nodded with a lump in her throat; she had not expected forgiveness from the blonde leader.

“I do not know if I ever can…” Clarke wondered exhaling loudly.

Lexa felt her shoulders drop slightly aware of what the other woman’s words must mean and the slight heartbreak she felt at the realization that Clarke may have feeling for her but that she singles handily had destroyed every chance for happiness with Clarke must have shown clearly on her face.

Lexa watched Clarke grind her teeth together and she blinked as if she was overcome by emotion. A moment later the blonde woman stepped into the commander’s personal space and Lexa’s brows furrowed involuntary in honest confusion.

Lexa’s green eyes widened slightly as Clarke suddenly stood on the tips of her toes and pressed her lips softly against the commander’s mouth. The touch was fleeting and soft and barely there, but Lexa felt something awaken again inside her heart, something she had tried and failed to lock away for all times.

“…but I want to try” Clarke breathed as their forehead touched. The blonde woman had never seen such an expression of open wonder on the commander’s serene face and in this moment, she had never looked farer removed from the powerful leader than ever. Her lips were pulled upwards in a smile, so strongly that a small crease had formed between the woman’s upper lip and nose. Clarke found it adorable. Her green eyes seemed to swim in unshed tears and Clarke hoped they were tears of relieve and happiness. When she tilted her head down slightly Clarke saw that the commander was still barefoot.

“You need to get back into bed” she admonished lightly “You will catch a cold like this”.

Lexa grinned slightly and shook her head “I do not get sick easily, Clarke” their foreheads were still touching.

Sounds of distress pulled them apart suddenly. Marie was obviously caught in the throes of a nightmare.

“You should still rest, commander” Clarke said taking a slight step back with an upturn of her lips and a tease in her voice.

“If that is your command, healer” Lexa bantered with a smile.

 

Chapter 137

Lexa watched Clarke leave her quarters for a moment before she turned around and faced the bed. Her own mind was a whirlwind of various thoughts now, but the girl needed her now, so the commander pushed all tumultuous thoughts from her mind for now. Marie was twisting and turning under the furs, her young face scrunched into a panicked grimace and cold sweat stuck a few blonde locks to her forehead. Lexa could only try to understand how traumatic the recent events must have been for their charge.

Careful not to jostle the bandages bound around her body too much, Lexa climbed onto the bed beside Marie and tried to stop her frantic movements by taking hold of the girl’s flailing arms and pulling her smaller body into a tight embrace.

The girl whimpered like a wounded animal as she finally resurfaced from her nightmare and her grey eyes were widened and filled with endless panic. Marie began fighting against the arms which were restraining her, and Lexa tried to sooth the girl as best as she could, whispering reassurances into her ears for a few moments until her erratic breathing started to turn back to normal.

Marie still looked visibly shaken and pale when recognition returned to her grey eyes and her gaze instantly sought out the bandages bound around the commander’s body.

“I am here, Marie” Lexa tried to reassure her in a soft tone and gently whipped a tear from the girl’s clammy cheek.

“You almost died” Marie breathed in a wavering voice and moisture gathered in her grey orbs again before she uttered “You did…in my dream”.

“I am here and well, Marie” Lexa repeated in a steady tone and pulled the girl’s body more firmly into an embrace so that the girl could lay her head against her chest and listen to her steady heartbeat. The gesture seemed to calm Marie as much as Lexa had hoped it would. She felt the girl take in a few shuddering breaths until she wound her smaller arms around her neck and answered the embrace.

“You are not allowed to die” Marie whispered against the skin of Lexa’s neck.

The commander held her breath for a long moment, stunned silent by the girl’s words and all too aware that she could not make a promise on her own survival. “One day my fight will end, Marie” Lexa said in a matter of fact tone and although her words may not have been sympathetic, her green eyes were soft and gentle still. “But it has not ended today” she said and brushed some hair from the girl’s forehead.

Marie leaned into the gentle caress with a content sigh and a slight smile settled onto her lips. Her features turned sober again only a short moment later, “What will happen now?” the girl wanted to know in a curious tone.

“Anya will probably bring word soon about who has made the attempt on my life” Lexa answered easily, keeping her eyes gentle. The commander felt anger coursing through her veins, if it had not been for Marie’s talent she would have bleed to death a few hours ago and the people of Polis would be preparing for the rise of a new commander. Although this had not been the first, nor surely the last, assassination attempt made on her Lexa had felt more content in the last weeks than she had in a long time. She had believed that the hard cold season would force her remaining opponents to put their plans into halt at least until the snow melted. This had given her an illusion of security and the assassins had come dangerously close to accomplishing their goals, rudely shattering the illusion of safety.

Lexa hypothesized that the assassins would have been sent by Ice Nation but before they had definite proof, there was no way of knowing that for sure. She would need to speak with Roan and Ontari soon. It already gnawed at her mind that she would be forced to sit idle and do nothing until at least a few days had passed otherwise the danger of exposing Marie’s talent would be too great.

“So, there will be more executions” Marie mused lowly in a rather flat tone.

Lexa would have expected to spot some amount of sullenness or at least frustration on the girl’s face. It had been obvious that watching executions was nothing Marie enjoyed and Lexa highly doubted that this would change. But Marie appeared accepting of what was bound to happen. Assassins rarely were captured alive, they had been briefed to kill themselves rather than taking the risk to break under the pressure of torture, so Lexa highly doubted that anyone would be caught alive.

She explained the same thing to Marie and the only thing the girl commented on was that this “makes sense”. Often enough it was not possible to identify from which clan assassins came from, so it might remain totally unclear on who had tried to kill the commander.

“And what happens now that others know as well that I can heal you?” Marie asked into the silence that had settled between them. It was obvious Marie was content still in the tight embrace and Lexa doubted that girl wished to let go yet.

“Nothing in particular” Lexa answered “We will need to be even more cautious now. Neither Anya nor I wish for you to be in even graver danger, but I trust Gustus, Titus and Clarke not to exploit your talent”.

Marie nodded with a thoughtful expression but remained silent. “I guess Titus will not wish to send me away anymore now” the girl mused after another moment of silence.

The corners of Lexa’s mouth curled into the ghost of a smile as she shook her head “No, he certainly will not”. But that was probably the only positive outcome of what had happened. Even in her own mind she knew that thought to be wrong, Clarke would certainly not have thought about the possibility of something between them otherwise. Still, the commander could not shake the twinge of worry that only shock and adrenaline had spoken out of the blonde healer. It was still possible for the other woman to sober up and recognize the impossibility of their situation. Lexa sighed under her breath fearing that another heartbreak was awaiting her, and it would be something she would be utterly defenceless against.

Lexa felt Marie’s body relax against herself as she gently let her fingers stroke over the girl’s back in a soothing pattern as silence settled between them again. She was not sure if Marie had fallen asleep again or not, but the girl had closed her eyes some time ago.

Lexa stayed in the bed together with Marie battling with her own thoughts in her head. She was worried. Worried about the state of her people. The assassination attempt would have been witnessed by at least some citizens and if not the actual attempt, people were bound to have seen her brought back into the tower, barely able to walk anymore.

Word would have spread by now through the cities and the first vendors would have already left the city spreading rumours about their commander’s probable death to the nearing villages. Lexa dearly hoped that panic would not spread through the streets. She would need to show herself as soon as possible to quell the uncertainty of her people. In times of fear and uncertainty it was easier to sow discontent and her coalition was not as stable as she wished.

Her thoughts kept on circling around what needed to be done to assure order until Anya returned. Several hours had passed and the frustration edged deeply into the older woman’s features was enough to tell Lexa without any words that they had failed in their attempts to locate the assassins.

Anya looked wary and cracked the knuckles of her fingers until they cracked loudly, obviously easing some of her tension.

Marie did not steer in Lexa’s arms, so the commander judged the girl to have drifted back to sleep. She had not stopped stroking her back and Lexa carefully slid out under Marie, waiting a few moments to be sure not to wake her again.

“She looks pale” Anya observed with worry apparent in her brown eyes as she took off her cloak. It must have started to snow again as the cloak was covered in a layer of snowflakes which also glistened in the general’s hair.

Lexa nodded and tucked a fur around Marie’s body to keep the girl warm, before she turned from the bed and stepped over to one of the armchairs. Risha looked up from the fireplace and trotted over to the commander, sitting down at her feet and lying her muzzle on her knees, clearly wanting to get petted. Lexa lightly scratched the animal behind her ears “Marie is shaken by what has happened and she seems exhausted. Healing me seems to have taken a lot out of her”.

“One assassin is still being haunted” Anya said “The other was found dead. Poison probably. No means to identify his origin”.

Lexa nodded, sighing lowly under her breath; in truth she had not expected another outcome.

“Word had spread already” Anya reported with annoyance clear in her tone “By now it will have peddled to you being shot by at least twenty arrows”.

Lexa pinched the bridge of her nose. That was exactly what she had feared would happen. “I need to hold a meeting with the ambassadors as quickly as possible” she proclaimed.

Anya raised a brow in silent criticism “I thought we agreed to keep up appearances of your injury”.

“Yes” Lexa relented “But if the assassins have been sent by queen Nia, which I am convinced of, she will just be waiting to strike as long as she assumes me weakened”.

The general nodded in silent agreement to both statements, but that still did not change the fact that they needed to protect Marie.

“How long do you expect me to sit idle and do nothing?” Lexa almost seethed through clenched teeth.

Anya sighed under her breath, rolling her eyes at her former seconds obvious lack of patience “You have been seen to be wounded, severely wounded at that. It would not be expected of you to be able to move for some time now. But you should ask Clarke about how much time would be appropriate”.

Lexa huffed. The wounds she now had were only superficial and even if Clarke had been able to stop the bleeding, she would not lie around for weeks and wait for her body to heal. She was the commander and she was needed, and she needed to show strength and not weakness to her people.

Lexa forcefully exhaled a deep breath, trying to calm the anger she felt, she was aware it was misguided towards Anya and the older woman was not deserving of her short temper. She did not wish to ask Clarke for her input in the matter, Lexa was uncharacteristically unsure of how the next time they faced each other would come to play out.

“Why do you think it tired her out now?” Anya questioned, efficiently pulling the commander from her thoughts.

Lexa shook her head in the negative “I do not know. And I doubt we will ever understand how her talent truly works.”

“Titus seems to have chalked it off to Marie “being gifted by the spirits”” Anya remarked with a light frown.

“It does matter not where here power comes from” Lexa commented with another slight shake of her head. It would be useless to waste energy trying to figure out the mechanism and the origin of the girl’s power. She did not know if Clarke would be satisfied with this simple answer though, she had clearly shown interest before already.

“The nightbloods need to be reassured that I will live as well” Lexa said after a moment of silence.

Anya raised a brow in silent question “I thought Titus would do so”.

Lexa huffed “And you think Titus will efficiently do so?” The flamekeeper had never been very sympathetic in his wording and Lexa knew how the nightbloods must be feeling right now. They would anxiously be waiting to hear the horn blow, signalling the death of the commander.

“They can be called here” Lexa suggested. She wanted to ease the children’s worries as soon as possible.

Anya sighed lowly in reaction “Lexa, we should wait with that at least for a day or two. If it puts your mind at ease, I will speak with them myself”.

“It would” Lexa admonished in a gentler tone and her green eyes looked almost apologetic.

Anya huffed, containing another eyeroll and stood up again. It would be a few long days to come with Lexa confined to her quarters, obviously fearing already that chaos would erupt in her coalition in her absence.

Marie was still sleeping peacefully on the bed, so Lexa picked up her journal from the table and started to write down what had occurred during the morning. Although Lexa tried to focus on the assassination attempt, her mind kept on drifting back to the soft press of Clarke’s lips against her own. She had been entirely caught off guard by the blonde’s move. Lexa involuntary felt hope blossom inside her heart, hope that something between her and Clarke might still develop.

With an annoyed frown Lexa shook her head at the train of her own thoughts. She needed to focus, she could not allow Clarke to become a distraction for her. No matter how much she might wish for it otherwise, the duty to her people would always have to come first. The commander highly doubted that the leaders of the coalition would take kindly to a romance between her and Wanheda. If something truly was to grow between them, they would need to be discreet about it, as long as the Ice Nation was not dealt with and the coalition still remained unstable.

Although she had not expected another outcome of the search for the assassins and their origin, the commander was still annoyed by the lack of proof. With an impatient huff Lexa closed her journal again, letting the book fall onto the couch next to her. She pulled her legs up, now sitting cross-legged on the sofa. Lexa ignored the painful tugging of her wounds as she straightened her spine and closed her eyes, trying to fall into the relaxation of a deep mediation.

Lexa was snapped out of her mediation some time later when Anya returned, and the door fell closed behind her general with a resonating click. The commander crunched her brows in confusion when she spotted Marie curled onto the sofa beside herself. Their charge must have woken up again and tiptoed over. How the girl had managed to slip on the couch and to lay her head on Lexa’s legs without her noticing, was beyond her understanding now.

“She seems comfy” Anya commented with a playful smirk, thinking that their charge must have fallen asleep again.

But the girl’s grey eyes opened a second later and judging from the state of alert in them, she had been awake the whole time. Lexa internally wondered when it had become routine for Marie to just seek one of them out to cuddle, because there simply was no other word for what the girl obviously wanted at the moment.

Her face must have shown some irritation, because Marie scrambled to sit up again with a slightly sheepish expression on her face, which was still paler than usual.

“You do know that Lexa is no piece of furniture?” Anya teased the girl, playfulness still dancing in her brown eyes.

Marie obviously still failed to fully grasp the general’s sense of humour and the girl nodded quickly as she slid away on the sofa into a corner, pulling the fur tightly around her small frame.

The commander glared slightly at the older woman, she had already tried to explain to her mentor that Marie did not seem to cope very well with her sometimes sharp comments. After the shock of the day the girl was obviously even more fragile than normal, and Lexa motioned the girl back to lean against herself with a mute gesture.

The girl smiled softly as she followed the commander’s nonverbal offering and her smile got bigger as Lexa started to gently stroke over her back.

Anya rolled her eyes at the open affection the commander was showing to their charge. She allowed Marie to seek comfort from her in bed as well, but she did not believe that cuddling the girl, like Lexa was doing now, was wise. They wanted her to grow up strong and develop into the best warrior she could, but the girl seemed to have gotten more of a daughter of sorts to them in the last weeks. Of course, they still trained her, and Marie was making good progress, but Anya was still unused to the concept of living this closely together with a second; Lexa and Tris had both already been much more independent at Marie’s age and did not require any physical reassurances from her.

Lexa could almost read the other woman’s thoughts on her features as the emotions flashed through her brown eyes. Almost seeing her die must have shook Anya more extensively than Lexa had anticipated. It was a sharp reminder to both of them that their peace was short lived, the sense of security that had lulled them in the capitol was nothing but a delusion and that her life as the commander was always at risk.

Marie would not understand yet what was at stake. And yet, although Lexa understood it all clearly, she wished to experience for herself what she was fighting so hard for her people. She had sacrificed her revenge against the Ice Queen for her people. She wished to see her people flourish, to lead them into a time of true peace. A time, where children would be able to play safely without the force to form them into warriors before they were ready. A time, where knowledge and trade would be as valuable as a sword was now.

She could still feel the ghost of Clarke’s soft lips pressed against hers and Lexa wished nothing more, than to have a real chance to find love again. She had resigned herself to a live of loneliness but now that she had gotten a taste from the life she could have, filled with contentment and joy, she knew that she would fight even harder to keep hold of that life.

Even though Clarke may have given her a chance at a new love, a chance Lexa had truthfully never thought to be gifted with again after being robbed of Costia, Marie had changed her life in other ways. To her knowledge no commander had settled down and started a family. The nightbloods had always been the only children a commander would have in a sense. But Marie was different. She had wormed herself deeply into hers and Anya’s hearts, blurring the lines between a first and a second with every passing day and now she was more a daughter to them than anything else and Lexa could not bring herself to find fault in that fact.   

 

 

 

 

Chapter 138

Lexa’s mood deteriorated with every passing hour of her confinement to her quarters. Three days had passed since the attempt had been made on the commander’s life and every hour since then felt like torture to her. She was not used to being forced to stay in her quarters for several days when she was needed otherwise.

Anya had gone to a few meetings with the ambassadors, upholding order within the capitol together with Titus. No matter how much the general and flamekeeper assured their commander that everything was still under control, Lexa found it hard to believe them.

Marie was the only one keeping her company constantly and the girl seemed to be totally immune to her declining mood. But while Anya’s and Titus’ reasonings seemed to only incense the young commander, Marie was somehow able to calm Lexa again.

It was not just the fact that Lexa had started to feel like a caged animal within her quarters, but also the fact that Clarke had not come to see her once since their second kiss and Lexa could not stop her mind conjuring the worst possible outcomes now.

She had started to fear that Clarke would suddenly decide to leave the capitol. The blonde’s absence could only mean one thing in the commander’s mind, namely that she regretted what she had done.

Lexa longed to summon the blonde into her quarters and by thus force her to speak with her again, but she doubted that would go over well with the fiery blonde. The other option would be to visit her quarters, but Lexa ruled that out as well, she had agreed with Anya that she would at least spend two or three more days within her quarters.

Currently Anya was outside training with her unit. Lexa had despatched Marie to accompany the general to be left alone for once, she had thought to feel some relieve, but surprisingly being totally alone with her own thoughts made it even harder. She had even shooed Risha from her quarters, sending the wolf outside with Anya and their charge.

Marie had been reluctant to leave Lexa’s side and only relented under the commander’s harsh glare. Although the girl had tried hard to ignore Lexa’s declining mood, she was not immune to her scowls and glares.

But it was not only Lexa who seemed to be in a bad mood, Anya’s nerves seemed rather frayed as well.

“Marie!” Anya shouted, knocking the girl from her feet with a well-aimed strike. The general was annoyed with the girl’s lacking attention at the training.

Marie groaned slightly under her breath, rubbing the back of her head gingerly.

“You need to keep your focus” the general lectured in a harsh tone “You are slacking”.

“I am not” the girl grumbled under her breath, obviously sulking.

Anya’s brown eyes flashed angrily at her charge’s cheek, and she knocked the staff from the girl’s hands by hitting her fingers.

Marie yelped in a mixture of shocked surprise and obvious pain, letting the staff clatter to the ground at her feet. She looked down at her fingers with widened eyes, blood was flowing from her knuckles, which had split open at the unexpected impact.

“Pick up your staff” Anya commanded strictly already facing the girl and waiting to attack again.

Marie gritted her teeth and bend down to pick up the staff.

But she was not moving fast enough to the general’s liking and Anya placed a strike against the girl’s back of her knees, knocking her down again efficiently.

“Ouch!” the girl exclaimed, and her face showed open accusation now, which only served to anger Anya even more.

Anya looked down at her charge with unmasked impatience. In her eyes the girl was not into training at all at the moment. She had gotten too comfortable in her routine and now seemed to prefer cuddling with Lexa on the sofa and listening to the commander tell her stories, compared to having to train. She would never get a powerful warrior like this and Anya felt like they were failing the girl. She did not know exactly why she was so frustrated with the girl at the moment, but she just was. Giving in to her frustration Anya laid back into the girl, knocking her from her feet again relentlessly and snarling at her to get back up again.

It went on like that for some time. Anya striking Marie down, the girl struggling to get back up and Anya attacking again before Marie even had time to attempt to defend herself.

After some time, Marie had seemingly enough, she threw the staff at Anya with a huff. Her features a mixture of rage, frustration and pain.

Anya raised a brow at the girl, glaring at her harshly. “Pick that up right now!” she snarled angrily, her eyes glittering with silent rage.

“No” the girl said, obviously trying hard not to cower under her mentor’s intense stare.

Other warriors had stopped their training and were watching the general and her second.

When Marie turned away from Anya, obviously intent on leaving the training pits, Anya intercepted the girl in her way, pushing her back hard.

“I have not allowed you to leave” Anya seethed, surprised at the girl’s antics “Training is not finished yet”.

“I don’t wanna train anymore” the girl exclaimed, looking at Anya almost pleadingly. She had no idea, why Anya was so angry with her right now, but she wanted to get away right now.

Anya gnashed her teeth together mutely for a moment, only her eyes betraying the anger coursing through her veins, at being defied like that. She could not remember Lexa or Tris ever trying to get away from training like this.

“You will train now!” she seethed loudly “You are weak! And your behaviour is undeserving of being the commander’s and my second”. Anya had taken the girl’s shoulders and shook her body to ingrain some sense back into her.

Marie’s eyes widened for a moment, before they flashed defiantly “I hate you!” the girl exclaimed with glittering eyes.

Anya let go of the girl as if burned by her skin and took a surprised step back from her charge. Her anger diminishing almost instantly.

Tears had filled up the girl’s grey eyes and she let the staff fall to the ground again, whirling around and running away from the stunned general.

“Marie!” Anya called behind the girl after she had found her voice again. She blinked in honest confusion at what had just happened.

Gustus had stood beside the training pit, having engaged in some training himself, and he now stopped Anya from following behind the clearly upset girl.

“Let her cool off” the burly man advised. He could remember several instances himself, where one of his children had uttered the same sentiment towards him when they were angry at him, so Gustus knew very well not to take the girl’s words very seriously. He could already imagine Marie coming back, probably crying as she did, desperately wanting to apologize and make sure that Anya was not angry with her, assuring her that she had not meant the words in the first place. Sierra had done so as well, years ago, but his daughter had not come back crying, but rather presenting prey to him, as a sign of apology.

Judging from the way the general’s features had paled and how exhausted the woman now looked, Anya was lacking the same experience. But Gustus did not doubt for one second that Anya would forgive Marie instantly later.

“You know that words fuelled by anger are not always true” Gustus admonished the general, steering her away from the training pits, away from the prying eyes still watching the woman’s every move.

Anya snorted under her breath, frustration flashing through her brown eyes. Her frustration became even more evident, when she as much as threw the training staffs back onto their receptive storing rack and the glare she sent the offending wooden staffs, when they fell to the ground again, could have set them aflame instantly.

“And I had thought children and drunk tend to be the most honest” Anya retorted angrily, turning her glare against Gustus. The girl’s last words kept on repeating in her mind non-stop.

The burly man had a smile twitching at his lips, clearly fighting hard against it, as he said “Not angry children, no. She has clearly shown before how deeply she cares for you. Marie was just angry at how harsh and unrelenting you were with her today. The girl is not the fault of your frustration, Anya, and it is ill placed with her.”

Anya gnashed her teeth together in silent frustration for a moment, before her features lost most of her anger and she looked more desperate than anything else. The general looked around and found too many people still watching them, so she led Gustus in the direction of some orchard. The trees had lost their foliage before the cold season had set in, but the orchard was mostly deserted now and did not offer much spaces as a hide out place.

Gustus followed the general in silence for a few moments, it was obvious that the woman’s thoughts were racing wildly and that she needed a moment to gather herself.

Anya stopped her quick movements abruptly and although there was a certain amount of sadness was visible in her eyes, frustration dominated her features. “I was not harsher with her than I need to be” Anya justified her training moodily.

Gustus raised a brow in mock surprise “Need to be?”

“She is weak, too weak” Anya retorted strongly, anger still coursing hotly through her veins, she pushed the hurt the girl’s words had caused in the far corner of her mind.

“Too weak for what?” Gustus questioned and after a moment he added “What is really troubling your mind, Anya?” It was rare for them to speak this openly with each other, but they had known each other for years and a certain amount of trust and even friendship had grown between them.

Anya huffed under her breath, crossing her arms over her chest, before she exhaled forcefully, and some pent-up tension seemed to leave her body. “Too many people already know off what she can do. She won’t be able to protect herself…” Anya finally admitted.

Gustus sighed and nodded warily. Although he had witnessed the healing Marie had performed on the commander, it was still hard for him to grasp the idea of such a talent. He knew that the other woman was correct, should the girl’s talent become public knowledge she would be hunted by many trying to exploit her power. “You still won’t be able to make a skilled warrior out of her in one training session, Anya” Gustus remarked cautiously. He could sympathise with the reason for her harshness, in all honesty the other woman was afraid for her charge.

“She should be stronger already. She must be as the commander’s second” Anya reasoned, her voice taking on a hint of anger again.

Gustus sighed again “Marie is more than a second to both of you”.

Anya looked at the burly man sharply “But she should not”. The words sounded wrong to her own ears, but maybe if she kept on pushing the girl to her limits and efficiently pushed her away, she would still be able to perform her duty as the girl’s first and make her the best warrior possible.

“Stop whatever you are thinking” Gustus interrupted the general. It was easy for him to read the other woman’s intention at the subtle hardening of her jaw and as harshness infused her brown eyes. “You three are more to each other than first and second, have been for some time now. What is it you fear suddenly?”

Anya’s eyes turned even harder now “I fear nothing” and her voice was as cold as ice.

Gustus merely rolled his eyes at the other woman “Of course you are above fear, general” he mocked her.

Anya narrowed her eyes at the burly man “Careful, Gustus” she chided him harshly.

“You can stop with that attitude of yours, you know?” Gustus retorted “I still fail to see your problem”.

“The commander almost died” Anya remarked, clenching her teeth together forcefully. They had failed to find any hint on the origin of the assassins and it irked her in the wrong way to see Marie distracting Lexa from her duties as the commander with pleading her to read to her or something frivolous like that. They should be planning against the Ice Nation, there was no doubt in her mind that queen Nia would have send the assassins, and yet Lexa had refused to send assassins of her own and eliminating the queen, telling her that something like that was not honourable.

Gustus who had become rather annoyed with the other woman’s stubbornness, deflated visibly. He was immensely thankful for Marie being able to save Lexa’s life. The newly found peace between the clans would have shattered immediately with the death of the commander and war would be brewing quickly, no matter who would ascend as the next commander. “Lexa lives and she will continue to do so, but that has nothing to do with your second” the man finally said.

Anya huffed under her breath, replaying how she had trained the girl. She winced slightly as she remembered the girl’s bleeding hands and only laid into her harsher as a reaction. There was a certain truth to his words, that she had been harsher with her than she had been before, but maybe she had only been too lenient with Marie?

Gustus watched the anger fade from the other woman and sadness seemed to overtake her features.

Anya swallowed visibly “Lexa will understand that Marie needs to train more intensely. And it matters not if the girl hates me”. Her voice sounded almost bitter, even to her own ears.

“I thought you were both satisfied with her progress” Gustus commented. He chose not to comment on the last part of Anya’s statement, he knew how stubborn the woman could be and he would not succeed in convincing her now.

“We have slacked in her training in the last days” Anya responded and turned back around, intent on heading back to the tower and the commander. She was not exactly looking forward to return into Lexa’s immediate presence, but the commander’s enforced confinement to her quarters would end soon enough.

“Watching Lexa almost die had an impact on both of you” Gustus commented lowering his voice, as they returned onto the streets leading to the tower.

Anya huffed nonchalantly as her only response and Gustus knew trying to talk further sense into her would be fruitless.

Lexa looked up from the book she had been trying to read for the last few hours when the doors to her quarters were pushed open again. Anya and Marie had left hours ago and since then she had desperately tried to focus her attention on the book in her hands but had failed miserably at that. She raised a brow in obvious confusion when Anya returned alone.

“Where is Marie?” the commander asked immediately, closing the book and sitting up in the bed.

“I thought she had returned” Anya commented, and her face fell slightly.

A frown settled on the commander’s face at Anya’s answer “Has she not been training with you?”

“She has” Anya answered shortly, turning her back to the younger woman and shrugging out of her coat and unbuckling the light armour she had worn for training. Internally she was wondering where Marie might have gone.

Lexa instantly sensed that something must have happened at the training, Anya was behaving strangely enough to warrant that assumption, so she asked, “What has happened?”

“Nothing” Anya retorted angrily at being interrogated like that.

“Nothing?” Lexa echoed with a raised brow. She did not believe that answer for a single moment. Although she herself was still frustrated at the prospect of having to spend another two or three days in her quarters, she had realized that being on her own was even worse and was internally grateful for Anya’s company and had also looked forward to spending more time with Marie, she had given up on hope to see Clarke for now.

“I have trained her” Anya whirled around, facing the younger woman again, and there was accusation in her voice now “Harder than before and she snapped”.

Lexa’s frown deepened, a mixture of worry and confusion evident on her face.

“She needs to be able to protect herself” Anya continued, voice getting louder slightly “And she can’t! She is relying on us being there to protect her. But we won’t always be there. You almost dying is proof enough of that! I could not protect you then as well!”

Lexa sighed under her breath, her green eyes softening at the outburst of raw emotion from her former mentor. She had already assumed that Anya regarded the almost succeeded assassination attempt as a sort of personal failure in her position as the commander’s general, but she had not grasped the magnitude of that.

Lexa stood from the bed, the wounds barely causing any real pain any longer, and crossed the room to stand in front of Anya, looking deeply into the other woman’s brown eyes as she said, “You have not failed me, Anya. And neither will you fail, Marie”. Her voice was strong and laced with the conviction of Anya’s loyalty.

Her words must have stroked a chord with the general and relieve flickered through her brown eyes.

“I might have already with Marie” Anya added heavily after a moment of silence.

Lexa looked at the older woman in silent question, asking her to elaborate.

“She hates me now” Anya explained in a pained whisper.

Lexa shook her head immediately in denial “I do not know what happened. But Marie loves you, Anya, she loves both of us and I highly doubt one training would be enough to change that”.

Anya looked away from the commander, a shameful expression on her face “You have not seen her reaction or heard her words, she did mean them” she assured Lexa and closed her eyes against the flash of hurt in her heart.

 

 

Chapter 139

Marie stormed away from the training pits, with anger coursing through her veins and tears running down her cheeks. Her whole body was aching, and blood was still dripping from the busted skin of her hands.  Large bruises had no doubt already formed under her clothes in various places as well.

Marie had no real destination in mind, as she roamed through the streets. Several people had made to approach her, but Risha, who followed on her heels, had growled at them and they backed off, leaving her to walk alone again.

Her feet carried her to the stables on their own accord. This time the stables were not deserted completely, but she had been there many times before and all the warriors working there knew to let her pass if she wished. Risha looked up at her human and turned around, the horses never liked the cub’s company and got nervous. The stable master had threatened to ban the wolf from the stables altogether, if Risha spooked the horses and something happened. Anya had given her the advice to teach the wolf that the stables were off limits now and Marie had started to teach Risha to stay outside to avoid trouble.

The commander’s black mare instantly whinnied in greeting and pushed its enormous head over the fence, clearly wanting to be petted by her. Marie obliged the silent plea with a slight smile and stood on tiptoes to be able to scratch the horse behind its ears; she had learned already that the mare enjoyed this place the most.

Marie’s smile dropped from her face only moments later. The last moments of her training with Anya flashing through her mind. Although her body still hurt in too many places to count right now, what hurt the most was the guilt settling in her heart. She knew, she should not have said that she hated her mentor. She had not meant the words, the very moment they had left her mouth but she could not take them back anymore now.

What if she had destroyed everything for herself with one single sentence? In truth she did not mean the words even while she said them. She had just been so incredibly angry at Anya. Hearing that she was too weak to be a proper second to Lexa and the general had hurt her more than she cared to admit. She was doing her best, or at least Marie was convinced of that, and it obviously was not enough in Anya’s opinion.

Marie was torn between returning to the tower and trying to apologize and staying where she was. She had no idea how Anya would react to an apology, or if the woman would even give her a chance to apologize. Marie felt as if she had already destroyed the connection they had.

She had not even realized that she had started to cry under her breath, until Skairasha suddenly nudged her nose against her chest and Marie saw some teardrops fall onto the horse’s black coat.

Marie sniffled a few times and slung her arms around the mare’s huge neck, hugging the big animal tightly.

The new second working at the stables watched the blonde girl speak to the horse in hushed whispers, too low to understand from the distance. He was surprised that the commander’s warhorse seemed to welcome the girl; he had already learned to keep as much distance to the beast as possible. It had enormous hooves and viciously sharp teeth and barely accepted his first in its periphery. The girl was much smaller than he was, and she did not seem the least bit intrigued by the war horse. His eyes widened in fright when the girl hugged the huge horse; he knew that his first would punish him severely if something happened under his watch. To his surprise and utter relief, the horse accepted the handling willingly, only neighing slightly. He had heard already that the blonde girl was from the sky and not comparable to any of their own people; he would have a lot to tell his friends later now that he had seen the commander’s second with his very eyes for the first time. He had no idea, why the girl was crying, but he knew it was not his place to offer her any words of consolation, so he stayed back and simply watched her in silence.

When Marie took a step back from the black mare, she suddenly felt the weight of another’s gaze on her back, she whirled around and spotted a lanky boy watching her. He was probably the replacement for the second which had been killed by Ontari weeks ago.

A blush coloured Marie’s cheeks and she harshly rubbed at her cheeks, trying to erase the visible traces of the tears from her face. She straightened slightly, standing taller, at the realization that she had just been watched; she had no idea when the boy had appeared. With quick strides she went passed him, not saying a word to the boy. In her mind she was chiding herself as weak as Anya had accused her of being, crying in front of a stranger like that was probably unacceptable as the commander’s second as well. Titus had always told her that she needed to carry herself with a certain amount of grace and dignity, but she was failing at this as well.

Her steps carried her back towards the tower. More warriors were patrolling the streets than usual, and Marie had the distinct feeling that they might have been searching for her. She realized that it had gotten much later than she had thought, so it was possible that Lexa had already send warriors to look for her.

She could not quiet shake the nagging voice from her mind, doubting that someone would be send to search for her at all, after what had happened during the training. Would she even be welcomed in the commander’s quarters right now?

Marie was biting at her lips strongly when she finally arrived at the top of the tower. No one had intercepted her on her way, but she still stood in front of the doors indecisively for long moments.

“Why don’t you go in?” Gustus finally addressed the girl, having watched her inner turmoil in silence long enough now. The girl looked ready to bolt and he had spoken softly as to not scare her away.

Marie looked up startled at his words. Her grey eyes wide and filled with actual fear.

“Am I still allowed to go in…?” the girl’s voice was small, and her eyes cast downwards on the floor.

Gustus looked down at the girl with a slight frown, what had happened was not enough to warrant insecurities this deep. The conviction that only Lexa and Anya would be able to reassure their charge, kept him silent and he mutely opened the door to the girl. When she visibly hesitated on the threshold, Gustus gave her a light push inside the commander’s quarters and closed the door behind her, blocking her exit route if she decided to simply turn around and flee instead of facing the general.

Lexa was sitting at the table, reading a report of bandits raiding the borders of the Plain Rider Clan. The commander looked up when the door opened, and she felt a bout of relieve at seeing their charge return. Anya was taking a bath at the moment and Lexa was glad to have a few moments to speak with the girl on her own.

The guilt was palpable in her grey eyes and posture. Her eyes were reddened, so it was obvious she had been crying. She was biting at her lips, which already had a bloody sheen to them, as if she had bitten them open, and she was scratching at her hands again. The girl’s hands were crusted with dried blood already and her knuckles looked raw and busted, the stress induced scratching not helping the already pre-existing injuries.

“Come here” Lexa motioned Marie over, voice gentle and eyes soft. She would not directly intercept in the fall-out between the general and her second, but it was obvious she needed reassurance now, that not everything was lost now.

Marie straightened herself slightly and stepped closer to the couch, but not getting into arm’s reach yet.

“Why do you think that you are not allowed inside our quarters anymore, Marie?” Lexa asked, putting emphasis on the word “our” in her question. A slight frown settled on her features, when she watched Marie supress a shrug as an answer; a gesture she still tented to use as an answer sometimes, no matter how often the girl was told not to.

“I will train harder now, I promise” the girl answered, completely ignoring the actual questions, and a quiver to her tone. “But I can do better, honest”.

Lexa’s frown deepened at her response, a worried crease forming between her eyebrows. Lexa leaned forward and tugged the girl closer to her, pulling at her so that the girl came to stand between her knees. With a finger under the girl’s chin, Lexa forced Marie to meet her gaze.

Her eyes shortly travelled in the direction of the bathroom. Anya had been impatiently awaiting Marie’s return and had immediately wanted to go after the girl after speaking with the commander. Lexa had advised her against that, telling the general to take a bath while she waited and if their charge had still not returned in a few hours, she would send out warriors to look for Marie. Anya’s mood had been hard to decipher, she seemed to have been an explosive mixture of angry and disappointed, and Lexa doubted Marie would have an easy time to apologize to the proud general. 

“Your training is making enough progress, Marie” Lexa assured the girl in a firm tone “And as we have both assured you, your place is here now. You need to stop doubting yourself, Marie.” The commander addressed the girl’s unvoiced fear, she knew that only time would help in decreasing the girl’s insecurities.

Marie met her unwavering gaze with wide grey eyes. “Is Anya very angry?” she asked in a small tone, as her eyes searched through the room again for the general.

“Your words will have disappointed her greatly” Lexa answered the girl’s question honestly, there was no sense in sugar-coating the truth for her as the girl also needed to learn that her words had consequences.

Marie’s shoulders sagged, and she looked the very image of miserable, guilt marring her features. “She has not gone away, right?” the girl checked fear flashing through her grey eyes.

“No” Lexa shook her head in the negative, slightly surprised by the absurdity of the girl’s question and motioned towards the bathroom “Anya is bathing”. She squeezed the girl’s shoulder reassuringly and watched how their charge moved to the bathroom unsurely.

Marie visibly hesitated in front of the door and she lightly knocked against the door, waiting to be allowed inside, which she normally did not.

Anya opened the door only a short moment later, a towel slung around her body and her hair still dripping with water. The woman must have stepped out of the bathing tube hurriedly to answer the knocking. The alarm on her face faded when she noticed Marie standing in front of her, a variety of emotions flashed over her features for a moment, until they became guarded. The general waited in stony silence for their charge to say something, Lexa could still see a certain amount of guilt on the other woman’s features at the visible wounds on the girl’s face. Marie was visibly squirming in place under Anya’s hard stare and the commander knew that the older woman would not yield.

“I am soooo sorry” the girl blurted out loudly after another moment, with wide already teared up eyes. “I don’t hate you! Please, believe me…” the girl’s voice trailed off, shaking strongly. Her grey eyes were mutely pleading with Anya.

Anya’s features softened slightly at the girl’s obvious misery, but her brown eyes were still rather hard and she only tersely nodded, still not saying a single word. Anya exhaled forcefully, looking down at the girl’s hands, which she kept twisting around each other in discomfort.

Anya caught the girl’s hands and looked at her busted knuckles. “Let’s get you cleaned up” she ordered their charge, pulling the girl into the bathroom with her.

Lexa stood from the couch and went over to the door, demanding a healer to be sent to her quarters. The girl would require some ointment for her fingers at least and she guessed other bruises were hidden by her clothes at the moment. Her bandage could be changed as well again.

Marie was visibly still unsure and shuffled her feet unsurely in the bathroom, staring at Anya with wide eyes.

“Do you really think, I am not worthy to be your and Lexa’s second?” the girl’s voice was wavering slightly, clearly showing that she had thought much about it. Her body might hurt pretty badly at the moment, but this one accusation had remained in Marie’s mind and she could not stop herself from questioning if Anya and Lexa would be better off without her.

Anya sighed under her breath, regretting her own words from earlier slightly. She knew that only frustration had spoken out of her, same as out of the girl. They had taken their frustration out on each other.

She took a wetted cloth and gently whipped at the girl’s hands, removing the crusted blood carefully. Marie winced at the treatment, but she did not try to withdraw her hands. Her face fell visibly, when Anya still had not said anything after a few moments.

“No, Marie” Anya finally said, “Your training is progressing well”. The general sighed, squeezing the girl’s fingers gently, “I want you to be able to protect yourself, Marie, Lexa and I won’t always be there to protect you and I do not want you to be harmed”.

Marie looked up at Anya, a startled expression on her features and her voice was tinted with surprise as she said, “You are worried about me”.

“Of course, I worry about you” Anya rebuked with a slight frown. Internally she was wondering, why the girl was even doubting something like that.

Marie smiled a slightly teary smile at her mentor and following a sudden instinct, she launched herself at the unsuspecting woman, winding her arm’s around Anya’s body. “I am really really sorry” the girl mumbled with her face pressed against the woman’s stomach.

Anya remained slightly rigid in the girl’s sudden embrace, unsure if she should reciprocate it or not. When the girl added another “I love you” after a moment, Anya forcefully relaxed her tense body slightly. Internally her mind was a chaotic whirlwind. She wanted to believe Marie’s words, but she could not simply forget her hateful words from earlier either. She could not remember something similar happening during her training with Lexa or Tris. But the relationship with her previous seconds had been different. She might not have always been their most favourite person, but both of them had always respected her and followed her orders without question. She had been slightly shocked by Marie telling her that she loved her for the first time, neither Lexa nor Tris had done the same before. So, both her previous seconds could not have withdrawn something again, they had simply never given before.

Marie looked sad, when she retreated from Anya a few moments later, the woman had not moved an inch and she felt her heart drop into the pit of her stomach, dread coiling inside her uncomfortably.

Anya was internally debating to reach out to the girl, when a healer entered the bathroom. The general nodded to the young man and stepped back. She collected another towel and dried her hair quickly, leaving the bathroom to give the healer space to work on their charge. Anya felt the weight of the girl’s gaze follow her out of the room.

The general dressed herself in silence under the watchful eyes of the commander. Lexa was aware that Anya had obviously not truly accepted the girl’s apology for now, otherwise the other woman would have stayed behind to see how extensive the damage was she had inflicted upon their charge. Her frown deepened on her face, she knew just how stubborn Anya could be, if she wanted. Lexa sighed under her breath, it was already annoying enough for herself to be forced to remain within her quarters and the tension which was bound to remain between her former mentor and their charge would not help the already tiring situation one bit. She doubted trying to get involved would actually achieve anything with the older woman, so Lexa remained silent as well.

Marie returned from the bathroom long moments later. Her hands were bandaged and another bandage peeked out under her shirt.

The healer reported to the commander that no bones seemed to have been broken, so no lasting damage was expected. Marie declined the offer of a tea against the pain she must be feeling.

By the way Marie’s shoulders had dropped and the sadness marring her features, the girl had realized also that Anya had in fact not forgiven her. The general had taken a whetstone and was sharpening one of her swords in stony silence.

Marie’s voice was rather small as she asked, solely addressing Lexa, “Can I visit Ontari?”

Lexa’s lips thinned slightly, but she still inclined her head in silent permission. It would probably have been better for the girl to remain here and actually try to reach out to Anya again, but she could understand why Marie chose to leave as well.

Both of them still did not like the fact that a friendship seemed to be developing between their charge and the Ice Nation nightblood.

Lexa watched the girl trudge out of her chamber’s in silence, although Anya had not looked up from her sword for a single moment, Lexa had still noticed the tightening of the general’s jaw, a clear sign that she was not pleased with the girl choosing to leave as well.

“Now she said that she loves me again” Anya commented after a few moments. The whetstone gliding over the sword slightly too strong now, expressing her frustration with their charge.

“And you do not believe her anymore” Lexa observed thoughtfully, she carefully kept any judgment out of her voice.

 

 

Chapter 140

Marie’s mood was totally bleak as she walked through the tower. She had hoped Anya would just accept her apology and everything would get back to normal, but it seemed it would not happen like that. Anya had remained distant and rather cold and being rejected like that had hurt, although she guessed she deserved her mentor’s treatment. She knew that she had probably hurt Anya deeply.

What if Anya would not forgive her? Would she just be Lexa’s second then? Could Anya even “get rid” of her, if the woman did not want her to be her second anymore? She distinctly remembered that Lexa had told her that Anya could stop being her first if the general wished but that being the commander’s second was usually for life.

The guards let her enter the floor which housed the prisoners without any questions asked. She knew the way to Ontari’s small room by heart now, having visited the older girl quiet a few times in the last weeks.

Ontari was lying on the narrow bed, when Marie entered the room. The older girl pushed herself up into a sitting position and her brow furrowed in confusion when she noticed the younger girl’s downcast features.

“What happened to you?” Ontari asked motioning to the girl’s bandaged hands. Her first thought had been, that the commander might have not survived the assassination attempt and succumbed to her wounds, but she knew that horns would pronounce the fall of the current commander to all citizens. In addition, she was convinced that the girl’s grief would be encompassing then.

“I did something really bad” Marie said, her grey eyes tearing up already.

Ontari’s dark eyes widened slightly at the implication of the girl’s words. Her wounds came from a punishment? That did not fit the way she had seen the general and the commander handle the girl, she could imagine the flamekeeper resorting to physical punishment, but she highly doubted the commander would allow her second to be harmed by the flamekeeper.

“And you were punished for it? Physically?” the nightblood checked carefully. She was unsure how to deal with the obviously emotional girl right now, lacking any experience of how to react to someone who was about to cry.

“What?” Marie asked with confusion on her features, when she realized what Ontari must have concluded, she quickly shook her head. “They are from training” she corrected the older girl, sitting down on the bed next to her and pulling her knees to her chest.

“So, what have you done then?” Ontari asked, making more room for the other girl on the narrow bed.

“I told Anya, that I hate her” Marie narrated with a sad tone.

Ontari frowned slightly at that information, not knowing how to react to something like that. “And you do not?” she questioned the younger girl after a moment of silence.

Marie was looking at her with big grey eyes as if her question had been absurd.

“Of course, not” Marie retorted rather heatedly. But the younger girl seemed to deflate instantly and her voice got small as she added, “I did tell her, that I love her, again, but she has not reacted at all”.

Ontari blinked at the younger girl, trying to come up fervently with a fitting reply. It was obvious that the situation was having a deep impact on the young girl, but she doubted she could be of any assistance there.

She could not even remember, if she had ever said anyone to love them. She guessed, that she would have said it to her parents as a child, before she was brought to the ice queen to train. But since then, it had not crossed her mind even once. If she thought about it, there had never been anyone in her life after her parents for who she did have any feelings.

“Can Anya stop to be my first?” the younger girl asked into the silence, which felt utterly strained to Ontari.

“Well…” Ontari started, questioning herself on how honest she should be with Marie right now. In the end, she decided to be brutally honest and answered “…in Azgeda a second who is not sufficient, is killed by the first”.

“Killed?” Marie echoed, with almost comically widened eyes. She had gone completely pale.

“I am sure the commander and general would not resort to that” Ontari quickly added when she noticed the horror in Marie’s grey eyes. “How is the commander by the way?” the older girl asked after a moment, trying to divert the blonde girl’s attention.

Marie opened her mouth to tell her, that she had healed Lexa and she was in no danger, but closed it again abruptly. Both her mentors would not be happy with her, if she told Ontari her secret.

Ontari frowned at the girl’s reaction, instantly picking onto the fact that she was withholding information. Her instincts told her, to pry for what was kept from her, she knew she could easily force the younger girl to tell her the truth, but something about Marie was rooting her in place, muting her instincts and waiting patiently for an answer.

“Lexa is healing” Marie finally settled on, her grey eyes not connecting with Ontari’s, “She is supposed to return to her position in the next days”.

Ontari nodded mutely. She had expected something like that, but she still wondered what Marie was keeping secret. She had seen first hand how deep the arrows had pierced the commander’s body and wounds like that could easily be fatal, destroying something within the body. She did not know, if she should feel disappointed at the information of the commander’s survival and she did not understand the slight bout of relieve that clouded her mind instead.

From the moment she had set foot onto the streets of the capitol, it had been her single all encompassing goal to rise as the next commander. Ontari had not doubted her prowess as a warrior, but after the time she had now spend observing commander Lexa, she had been forced to recognize that there were a lot of things the ice queen had not taught her. She hypothesised that it had been Nia’s intention all along, to place her on the throne, but to “guide” her from the side-lines, efficiently ruling the other clans.

The coalition and the commander had proven to be vastly different from what she had been told by Nia. She had been raised to believe that Ice Nation deserved to subjugate all other clans to their rule, but she had started to doubt, that only one clan should really rule over the others.

Their training had been halted since the attack on the commander and Ontari had tried to listen to the guards whispering about what was going on, but she had not heard anything useful since then. In all honesty, she had been bored, with no lessons to occupy her time, she had been forced to stay within the small room for three days now and she had even missed Marie’s easy company. She did not understand what kind of friendship they seemed to have developed almost naturally, because she knew she had not done anything to contribute to it. But Ontari had grown accustomed to the younger girl’s reoccurring visits to her room and although she did not understand, why Marie even kept on coming back, Ontari still craved the other girl’s company. Even though weeks had passed since she was introduced to the rest of the conclave, the other nightbloods still evaded her like the plague and none spoke to her, if Marie did not directly include her into a conversation.

Ontari knew that is was weakness to crave the younger girl’s company in the way she did now, but she still did not wish to stop this weird friendship.

It seemed that diverting the girl’s attention had not worked as well, as she Ontari had hoped.

“How can I make Anya believe me?” the younger girl asked, looking up at Ontari with big and almost pleading eyes.

Ontari pursed her lips in thought, she could not offer the blonde any advice. She could not remember a single instance where she had needed to apologize to somebody else. “I do not know, Marie” she said, shaking her head in the negative, “I have not had to apologize to anyone for a personal transgression like that”.

“You did not?” Marie wondered, brows creased in obvious disbelief.

Ontari shook her head again in silence. She may not have any experience with owing back a personal favour, but she knew that most people could be bribed by something, you just needed to know with what.

“Does the general need something?” the nightblood asked Marie with a thoughtful expression.

“What should Anya need?” Marie mused, obviously confused what Ontari was trying to hint at.

“Bribe her with something” Ontari supplied with a slight eyeroll. She was not sure, if the girl was truly that naïve or not.

Marie’s confusion seemed to only deepen, the thought had obviously truly not even crossed her mind.

“You could call it “a gift”” Ontari amended, noting on the slightly judging hint in the other girl’s grey eyes. “Or find something to impress her with” the nightblood added after a moment.

Marie creased her brow in obvious deep concentration, trying to come up with something that could be able to sooth Anya. She remembered, how Roan had told her a few days, that he had killed an ice bear as a young man, trying to impress his mother. She had not yet killed anything at a hunt, it would surely be a way to prove her worth.

“Can you go and hunt an ice bear with me?” Marie suggested innocently.

Ontari did a mental doubletake, blinking at the younger girl in open surprise. The absurdity of the idea surprised her immensely. She doubted that she would be allowed to leave the tower and even so, the lands where they could meet an ice bear was many days travel away and the ice bears tented to be mutated beasts, even large hunting parties often failed in trying to bring them down.

“Certainly not” she countered after a moment and the hopeful expression on the younger girl’s face vanished.

“Why not?” Marie almost pouted, voice whining slightly.

“We would not survive encountering an ice bear alone and the journey would be several days” Ontari reasoned with the younger girl, a tight smile on her own face.

“Mmh” Marie hummed nonchalantly. Silence settled between them again, as Marie obviously thought of another possibility. “You can train me” the young girl suggested, eyes shining with new-found enthusiasm.

Ontari breathed deeply, she was intent on declining the younger girl’s plea at once, but she did not wish to disappoint the girl’s obvious hope in her, so she nodded with a cautious expression. That still left the problem, that her room was certainly too small to teach the girl anything useful.

She had already noticed that Marie seemed to admire her combat skills and she was internally happy to be able to repay her somewhat.

The Ice Nation nightblood was surprised when the guards allowed her to leave the room and the tower, although they accompanied them, they were not stopped on their way to the training pits. She had not tried to leave the room, if she was not fetched for training, so Ontari had assumed to be a prisoner still.

Ontari was even more surprised when she was allowed to take swords from the weapon rack. The guards taxed her with watchful stares and she thought to have spotted uneasiness in their eyes, when she handed two swords to Marie and ordered her to face her. She had heard that the girl seemed to have a talent for handling two swords, just like the commander preferred to use, she would now see for herself if the whisperings had been true.

“I will not hold back” Ontari cautioned the younger girl, twirling her own swords in her hands, getting a feeling for the blades as she did so. A smirk pulled at her lips, as horror suddenly flashed over the younger girl’s features, but she amended “At least not much”.

True to her word, Ontari’s attacks were harsh. But Marie did not complain even once, the desire to prove to Anya, that she could do well as a warrior burning through her veins and fuelling her strength.

“You are not quick enough on your feet” Ontari chided the younger girl after long moments.

The guards were banding slightly worried glances, when Marie had sustained several smaller wounds.

But the girls did not stop fighting each other. Ontari specifically targeted the younger girl’s legs, trying to force her to concentrate on her footings. She had to silently give credit to Marie, she was holding herself well.

Ontari did still hold back a lot, but she increased the speed and ferocity of her attacks as they continued. She had miscalculated how quickly the younger girl moved and her sword sliced deeply into the thigh of the younger girl.

Ontari looked at the now bleeding wound with a deep frown. She was sure the commander would have her head, if she seriously wounded her second.

But Marie did not seem to mind the wound in the slightest, surprising Ontari with her continued attack. She felt the steel of one of the younger girl’s swords bit into the flesh of her upper arm.

Marie blinked down at her sword, black blood dripping from it. She had not cut the other girl deeply, but she had drawn blood and she felt a certain amount of pride. Ontari might have been distracted, but still, she had gotten a strike in.

Ontari took a step back, looking around them. Night was starting to fall, she nodded appreciatingly at the blonde girl. Her dark eyes widened visibly, when she caught on to the sudden paleness of Marie’s skin.

The wound on her thigh was bleeding profusely and she was losing too much blood. Marie blinked, as if waking from a daze, and her fingers were strained in red blood after she had touched her thigh, horror etched into her features.

“You need to see a healer” Ontari hurried the younger girl. She did not wish to imagine what the commander and the general, no matter how out of sorts she was her second right now, would do to her, when she brought Marie to them.

Ontari could hear the guards muttering to each other, as she let her own sword drop to the ground carelessly, just as Marie already had. The younger girl was swaying on her feet and Ontari rushed the small distance to her, sweeping the smaller body into her arms, quickly carrying her in the direction of the tower, the guards on her heels.

“Stay awake, alright?” Ontari addressed Marie urgently.

Marie nodded “It feels weird” she commented, seemingly offhanded.

“I am going to lose my head for this” Ontari mumbled to herself, chiding herself for being so careless. She had never actually feared for someone else to die. She had seen many people die, had killer numerous others singlehanded, but fearing for another’s life was a new experience for her. She had thought, that teaching someone else on how to fight, would be easy, but judging Marie’s strength had obviously been heavily miscalculated by herself.

Ontari took of her belt, when they reached the elevator, she tied it around the younger girl’s leg trying to staunch the girl’s bleeding. It was pooling down the girl’s leg at an alarming speed.

“It hurts” Marie complained into the strained silence.

Ontari nodded, as long as the girl still spoke, she still lived. She did not wish to see her die.

The guard, who always seemed to be around the commander, narrowed her eyes dangerously, as Ontari carried Marie down the hall, from the elevator to the step of the commander’s quarters.

He pushed the door to the quarters open without question. Ontari internally prayed that the commander would let her explain what had happened, before she simply chose to slit her throat, where she stood.

Lexa had watched Anya sharpening her sword for the last hours. It had started to get dark and it worried her, that Marie had not returned to their quarters yet. Although she did not believe, that the girl would do something reckless, Marie was still impulsive and she had been upset, when she left.

The commander looked up sharply, when the door to her quarters was pushed open without any kind of announcement. Anya stopped the motion of the whetstone as well, her eyes narrowing at Ontari, who stumbled inside.

Lexa stood quickly from the couch, ignoring the slight pain flaring up in her wounds, at the sight of Marie in Ontari’s arm.

Anya had discarded the whetstone and after Ontari had placed Marie on the couch, the general had pushed the nightblood away, the sharpened sword at her throat in an instant and her voice was threatening, as she seethed at the younger girl through bared teeth “What happened?!”.

Ontari swallowed forcefully against the blade pressed into her throat, trying hard not to flinch or cower under the intense stare.

Lexa stood above Marie, gently inspecting the gaping wound on the girl’s thigh. “Call a healer” she instructed Gustus with urgency in her tone.

Marie’s grey eyes were clouded with pain and she whimpered slightly as Lexa pulled the belt tighter around the girl’s leg.

“She wanted to impress you” Ontari tried to explain to the angry general.

Anya’s brown eyes narrowed even more. She did not understand, how Marie’s will to earn forgiveness could have lead to their charge being severely wounded. Anya pressed the sword slightly stronger against the girl’s neck, breaking skin now and she watched a fine line of black blood run down her pale neck.

Lexa looked up from Marie side, she had taken the girl’s hands and was trying to reassure her, that a healer would be here soon and take care of her. She was torn between making the nightblood girl bleed herself and reprimanding Anya for wounding a nightblood. Nightbloods were sacred after all.

“Anya!” Lexa addressed her general sharply.

Anya let go of the nightblood girl, sneering at her disdainfully as she pushed her away from herself.

Ontari swallowed once again and straightened herself “She wanted to hunt an ice bear for you” the nightblood said, solely directed at the general.

Commander and general bandied a confused gaze at that information.

“I suggested to train with her instead” Ontari explained quickly. The worry inside her dark eyes seemed to only be directed towards Marie “She fought well” she said and regret was clear in her voice when she added “I had not meant to hurt her”.

Lexa nodded curtly, Anya still looked livid, but the commander believed the word from the Ice Nation nightblood and she ordered “Return to your room”, her voice had been harsh and left little place for discussion, but it still seemed that the girl was reluctant to leave before she knew that Marie would be alright.

Ontari finally turned on the spot, under the intense glare from the commander, knowing she would not help her case, if she disobeyed. She had noticed that the commander seemed rather well for the wounds, hidden beneath her clothes.

 

 

 

 

Chapter 15: Chapter 141 - 150

Chapter Text

Chapter 141

Clarke had heard loud rushed steps on the floor of the hall, closely followed by Gustus ordering another guard to call for a healer.

Although she had not seen or heard anything from the commander in the last days, she instantly resumed that something might have happened. She had seen Marie heal Lexa’s wounds, only for the commander to inflict new wounds upon her body. Clarke had cleaned and dressed the wounds, which were not nearly as deep as the original ones, but she had not been called back into the woman’s quarters since then. It was entirely possible that the wounds could have caught an infection.

She had evaded the commander’s quarters like a coward, she was well aware of that. But she had not known how to face the other woman, after she had kissed her. Since feeling those sinful soft lips against her own again, Clarke could not shake them from her mind again. Green eyes, filled with honest surprise and wonder, swimming in adoration, had filled her thoughts. Her nightmares had not just been filled with flashes of the Mountain, but with endless amounts of black blood, with the pained groans Lexa had emitted. In her dreams Marie had not saved the commander, but she had tried in vain to stop the other woman from bleeding out. She had woken up with the feeling of black blood clinging to her fingers and lifeless green eyes at the forefront of her mind.

She had used the last three days to think about what she wanted for herself. Clarke had briefly thought about returning to her people, but had discarded that idea, as soon as it had crossed her mind. She did not wish to return to them and she was not sure, if she ever would.

Something was keeping her in Polis and was not used the city in itself, no matter how fascinating the streets filled with people were to her. In all honesty, it was the commander herself which kept her there.

Lexa was an enigma to her and one that had captivated her seemingly effortlessly. She had seen enough of the commander to recognize just how skilled as a leader the other woman was. The people of Polis loved their commander and Lexa had obviously done much for her people. But she had only seen little glimpses of the woman beneath the mantle of the commander and she felt connected to her in a way, which she could not understand.

The encompassing rage which had coursed through her veins whenever she had thought of the commander and what she had decided in the face of the Mountain, had simmered down. What remained behind of the rage was a deep feeling of hurt.

And still, as a leader she understood now that Lexa did not have any other choice then take the deal.

The trust which had built between them during the preparation of the Mountain might have been lost, but the instant attraction was still there.

Seeing the commander almost die had driven one-point home to her for good. Lexa was human, no matter that the grounders seemed to revere the young woman like a goddess, she was still a human being. A human with faults, hurts, desires and a human made of flesh and blood, a human which could die any moment.

Clarke could not predict how much time they might have together. But she was convinced, she would regret hanging on to petty anger later.

Clarke steeled herself, she had chosen to give Lexa a chance, to stop fighting the feelings that still lingered for the stoic leader.

She exited her quarters, bag with healing supplies in her arms and met Gustus in the hall, returning to his post in front of the commander’s quarters. “Is it the commander?” she asked the burly man.

Gustus shook his head “Marie” was the single word he said and Clarke thought to spot genuine worry in the man’s dark eyes for the young girl.

The doors were pushed open in front of her quickly and Clarke rushed inside, unsure of what to expect.

Clarke’s blue eyes quickly connected with Lexa’s green ones, the commander was crouched next to a couch and Marie laid on it. Blood was running from a large gash on the girl’s leg and judging from the small puddle of blood beneath her leg, Marie had already bled a lot, the fabric of her trousers was saturated with it as well.

“How did this happen?” she asked putting her bad onto a table and quickly looking for the things she would need to stitch the wound close.

“Training wound” Anya supplied in a clipped tone. Clarke had the feeling of a sudden déjà vu with the way Anya hovered beside the couch, worry open to see in her brown eyes and the general’s arms were crossed over her chest, it was obvious she was afraid for the girl. Clarke gritted her teeth mutely, she knew it would not make any sense to lecture the older woman on the fact that Marie was to young to be trained in such a fashion.

Lexa kept the girl’s hands in her own, feeling the bandages on the girl’s hands saturated with fresh blood as well, while Clarke prodded at Marie’s thigh and pulled another pained whimper from the girl’s lips.

“It is deep” Clarke observed “It needs stiches. But should it not heal on its own? Should she not be able to heal herself?”

Lexa thinned her lips in annoyance, in her opinion Clarke was wasting time with senseless questions. They did not understand, how Marie’s talent really worked, but she did not seem to be able to consciously heal herself. She quickly told the blonde woman so, urgency in her green eyes, to get her to work on their charge.

Clarke nodded, focusing her attention back on the young girl. She stood back up and searched for a tonic to help the girl with the pain, she also retrieved some alcohol to clean out the gash before stitching it close. Clarke forced Marie to swallow the tunic, the girl was in the process of losing consciousness.

Marie’s eyes flew open and she let out a pained scream as Clarke started to pour alcohol over the wound, trying to inch away from the added pain.

Anya bent down and pressed her hands onto the girl’s shoulders, efficiently pinning her in place on the sofa.

Marie’s grey eyes connected with Anya’s brown ones and her voice shook as she pleaded “It hurts, it hurts so much. Please, make it stop…”

The girl was still moving her legs too much for Clarke to efficiently stitch the wound, so Lexa reluctantly let go of Marie’s hands and moved to the end of the couch, taking a hold of her legs and keeping them in place.

“Focus on me, Marie” Anya ordered in a calm and soothing tone, when the general saw Clarke taking up the needle, intent to begin stitching the girl up.

Marie gritted her teeth and tears gathered in her grey eyes, as Clarke pushed the needle and the threat through her flesh.

“I … had … I had wanted…” the girl panted, interrupted by pained sounds coming from her mouth.

“Sssh” Anya tried to sooth the girl, keeping their eyes locked together and squeezing the girl’s shoulders in silent reassurance “It will be over soon” she promised.

The gash on the girl’s leg was long and deep and Clarke needed seemingly endless moments to sew it back together.

Marie’s brow was coated in sweat and she had bitten her lips bloody in the effort to keep her screams muted.

She groaned deeply when Clarke wiped more alcohol over the wound, before dressing the wound with a bandage. Her features were pale and drawn, when the treatment was finally over and the exertion was clear on her face.

Anya smiled down tightly at the girl as Clarke said that the wound would need several days of healing before the stitches could be removed. The blonde healer hoped that Marie’s body had not lost too much blood already, she instructed the general to watch the girl for sings of shock settling into her system and she instructed them to keep her awake for the next hours.

The girl’s skin felt cold and clammy to the touch and her breathing and heart rate was exhilarated, all signs that she had lost way too much blood already. Clarke would feel better, if she could give the girl a blood transfusion, but she did not know if their blood types matched or not. She remembered that Marie had been able to donate blood to Anya, so the general could probably donate blood for the girl, but she knew how testy the grounders were with the idea of sharing blood with another. If the girl’s health would not deteriorate in the next hours, she should recover completely, so she could still ask Anya later if the situation warranted it.

Clarke took a look at Marie’s hands again and wound new bandages around the injured knuckles. Training again so shortly after an injury had only worsened their state and Clarke tutted in silent annoyance, the wounds on the girl’s fingers looked inflamed already and would take a long time to heal, as Marie would constantly aggravate the healing skin.

Clarke washed away Marie’s bloods from her hands in the commander’s bathroom. Anya had stayed beside Marie, softly speaking to the girl, trying to keep her awake. Clarke felt Lexa’s presence behind her without the need to turn around and actually see the other woman.

“When have your bandages been changed last?” she asked immediately, as she turned to face the commander.

“Last night” Lexa supplied in a neutral tone.

Clarke found it hard to decipher anything from the commander’s face at the moment. Her features looked almost blank, but she thought that her green eyes looked slightly more open and vulnerable than she was used to. She nodded and offered to change them again, afraid they might still catch an infection.

When Clarke returned to the bathroom, Lexa had already shrugged out of her shirt, leaving her in a tight kind of leggings and her chest bindings.

The artist in Clarke could not help but wonder, what the tattoo engraved onto the commander’s spine meant, but she did not wish to ask, feeling like she could overstep a transparent boundary if she did.

“Thank you, Clarke” Lexa spoke, voice soft and her green eyes expressive.

Clarke nodded, swallowing rather forcefully. Whenever Lexa looked at her like that, her heartbeat quickened on its own accord and Clarke tried to keep her hands steady as she took off the old bandage around the commander’s body.

“Why did you cause yourself new wounds?” she asked the older woman when the silence felt too heavy between them.

“Even though I do trust my attendants and guards, they could have wondered why there was no sign of any wounds left” Lexa explained easily. She would not suspect that any of them, would have been foolish enough to tell someone else intentionally, but it would have been enough for the wrong pair of ears to caught on to some rumours. She kept her expression carefully blank, she was unsure what their kiss would mean to the status between them.

Clarke nodded in acknowledgment. “I still wonder, how Marie’s healing talent works, there has to be some rule about who she can heal and who not” she mused absent-minded “And why does she have this power at all?”

“We do not know, Clarke” Lexa answered and shook her head slightly “And it does not matter, why she has this power. If the wrong people hear about such a power, it will not matter, if she can control it or not, Marie will become an even bigger target. She would be more sought after than you and me.”

Clarke’s brows furrowed visibly and her hands stopped in their movements, cleaning out the wounds carefully. “Do your people truly believe that it is possible to absorb someone’s power by killing them?” she asked.

Lexa nodded curtly. In general, their people did believe in exactly that, but Marie’s power was different. It would speak against logic to transfer such a power in this way, but it would not help to keep the girl alive either, if she failed to heal, whoever tried to force her to use her power.

“Titus and others would still prefer it, if I killed you to get Wanheda’s powers” Lexa commented after a moment of silence.

Clarke’s hands stilled again and her body tensed visibly. Her voice had a strange tone as she asked, almost mockingly “Why don’t you then?”

Lexa’s green eyes, which had been expressive in their emotion, turned as cold and hard as ice in the blink of a second, but she did not say anything, clenching her teeth in obvious silent frustration.

Clarke sighed and the anger, which had resurfaced briefly, left her features. She took up a bandage and started to wind it around the commander’s torso. She stepped behind the other woman and she said “I am sorry” the regret tinting her voice seemed honest “I know, that you would not kill me”.

Lexa nodded tersely, still remaining quiet.

“Do you know who tried to have you assassinated?” Clarke asked, changing the subject. It was obvious Lexa did not really wish to speak about Marie’s talent or at the very least did not agree that there was anything about it to discuss.

“No” the commander answered. The shift in Lexa was apparent and Clarke almost regretted asking about anything relating politics. “But it was not expected anyway” Lexa added and the frustration with the whole situation was obvious in the clench of her jaw and the light flickering through her green eyes “Basically it could have been any clan. Without the exception of Trikru, the Boat People and Skykru.”

Clarke sighed “That are many exceptions for a coalition formed out of thirteen clans. I thought it would have been Ice Nation”. She had not been aware that the tensions within the coalition were this strong.

Lexa inclined her head “It is the most likely. But not necessary the only origin for unrest. The clans are still not satisfied with me allowing Skykru into the coalition and now that the Mountain is no longer, the clans search for another to fight, they are unused to peace.”

Clarke’s blue eyes shown with sympathy at the brunette’s words. She wondered how Lexa managed not to crumble under the burden of upholding peace. Her hand rested on the commander’s back between the bandage and her chest wrap, feeling the heat the soft skin emitted beneath her fingers.

Lexa stayed utterly still beneath Clarke’s hands, goose bumps raised on her skin at the feeling.

“Should they not be glad that there is finally peace?” Clarke asked in a soft tone, still standing behind the commander.

Lexa sighed under her breath “My people have known nothing else beside war for many years. They have forgotten the meaning of peace, it makes them uneasy and restless. We have fought for our survival since the bombs ended the old world. You think our ways are harsh, but this is how we survive.”

Clarke’s fingers twitched against the other woman’s back, there was no reason for her to keep caressing the skin beneath her fingers, but she was reluctant to pull back and stop their connection. Her mind flashed back to the situation right before the Mountain, where they had been waiting for Bellamy to signal that the acid fog had been dismantled. The words rang so similar that she could not help but respond similarly “Life should be about more than just surviving. Do we not survive better than that?”

Lexa exhaled visibly and turned around slightly. Clarke’s hand stayed in place and now rested on the commander’s side.

“Maybe we do deserve better than that” Lexa responded with a twitch of her lips, the ghost of a smile playing around them and a softer lightness danced through her green eyes now. Her eyes travelled to Clarke’s lips for a moment, but she did not lean over to connect hers to them again. She was still unsure what it was, that was developing between them and she was afraid to extinguish whatever it was, before it could bloom and take hold.

They stood gazing into each other’s eyes for long silent moments. Lexa did not know, who of them had started to move first, but a moment later she leaned down slightly, while Clarke moved towards herself and their lips brushed against each other again.

The kiss was still soft, unsure what it meant, but it lingered longer. Lexa breathed slightly quicker as they pulled apart for air. A smile now clearly turned the corners of her mouth upwards. She still could not believe that she was granted a second chance with the blonde Skykru leader. Her forehead rested against each other in a gentle gesture and Lexa could feel the blonde’s breath ghosting over her face, inhaling the aroma, that was so uniquely Clarke in her mind.

She searched the endlessness of Clarke’s blue eyes for a moment, looking for hesitation or even some of the anger to resurface, but all she could spot was a certain kind of excitement, adoration and, dare she name it, love.

Lexa leaned down again, pressing her lips against Clarke’s, more daring this time. Exploring the softness of her lips and she became nearly breathless, her heart feeling as if it wanted to hammer through her chest and offer itself to the blonde woman, as Clarke opened her mouth beneath her exploring lips.

She pulled back from their kiss, utterly breathless, but she was aware that rushing into whatever this was, would do no good. She was all too aware that Anya and Marie were just on the other side of the door as well. Now was not the right moment, although she internally wondered if it ever would be.

Clarke seemed to understand though. The blonde woman’s cheeks were slightly coloured with a blush and her blue eyes were shining stronger than the commander had seen after she had abandoned her at the foot of the Mountain.  

 

Hello there,

I have come to a point in the story, where I can bring it to a dramatic end very quickly. It would not be the happy ending I had envisioned, but it would work.

I guess it depends if people are still interested that I continue or not. So let me know if you would rather want to read a quick and sad ending or wait out longer?

 

Previously in chapter 141

Clarke stitches Marie’s wound back together. She changes the bandage for the commander and they kiss again.

 

Chapter 142

Anya had sat down on the sofa, facing Marie and was trying to keep the girl engaged in a conversation. She did not know for how long she should be keeping their charge awake, but it was obvious already that Marie was tired.

The girl’s grey eyes were focused on the general’s features and although Clarke had given her something for the pain, her leg still felt painful and every heartbeat gave a painful echo in the wound. “I had wanted to bring an ice bear for you as my first hunt” Marie narrated. Even though Ontari had reported already briefly what had happened, Marie had not really listened to what had been going on around her, too focused on the large bleeding gash.

Anya snorted under her breath and lightly shook her head at the absurdity of this plan. A shiver ran down her spine at the thought of Ontari and Marie actually leaving the capitol and encountering one of those vicious beasts. No matter how skilled Ontari might be as a hunter, two girls would not be enough to bring down an ice bear and live to tell the tale of it. She was aware, that the guards would not have allowed the two girls to leave the borders of the capitol, but the image alone was frightening enough.

“Why had you wanted to bring anything back at all?” the general asked, trying to understand what had driven the girl’s thoughts in such a way.

“To impress you” Marie said, trying to get up into a sitting position and a pained groan instantly emitted from her lips at the jostlement of her leg.

“Lie still” Anya instructed sternly. The wound had been deep and she had no idea, if the girl’s healing power would kick in and fasten the healing or not. Such a deep gash would take several days to start to heal, before the girl could start moving around again, which meant even more time lost for their charge’s training. She pinched the bridge of her nose in annoyance “There is no need for you to impress me, Marie” she reprimanded the girl.

Marie pouted slightly, obviously not believing the woman’s words. “You were still angry with me” she claimed in an almost sullen tone “Ontari said to bribe you with something. But she said, that hunting an ice bear was not possible now.”

Anya’s lips thinned and she breathed out a large sigh. It did not come as a surprise to her, that the Ice Nation nightblood would recommend bribery, but she would not have been pleased with Marie either way. She was just glad, that even Ontari had denied the girl to help with hunting an ice bear, so there must be some logical thinking within the nightbloods mind.

“So, I wanted her to train me” Marie continued to explain. Her voice was still rather strained and she was still trying to get into a more upright position, to be able to look better at Anya.

The general huffed under her breath at the girl’s continued effort and stood from the end of the couch. “That will hurt” she cautioned, when she placed her hands under the girl’s armpits and hoisted her upwards, so that she could sit down with Marie leaning against herself. Marie visibly bit her lips as she was handled by Anya, but she did not voice her obvious discomfort out loud.

The girl settled down more comfortably against the general’s body. It was apparent, that Marie was more content with the changed seating arrangement and Anya supressed an eye roll at the girl’s antics.

“Ontari said, that firsts in Ice Nation kill their seconds, if they are not worthy” Marie repeated the Ice Nation nightblood’s words and the fear in her grey eyes conveyed clearly, that she believed her.

Anya sighed under her breath at the apparent foolishness of the girl. “It must be a Skykru trait, to have such a thick skull” she rebuked their charge lightly and she shook her head in aggravation. “You are worthy of being …” Anya tried to install into their charge.

But Marie interrupted her with a frown “But you said, that I …”

“Hush” Anya held up her hand, silencing the girl with a stern expression. Her features softened minutely, when Marie closed her mouth again. “Yes, I have said, that you are not behaving worthy of being mine and Lexa’s second. But I was just as annoyed and angry, as you were, Marie” she tried to explain and looked deeply into the girl’s grey eyes.

“I have not meant the words, that I said, just like you did not” Anya clarified with importance in her tone.

“So, you still love me?” the girl checked, in an awfully small voice. Her grey eyes clearly showed, that she was afraid of being rejected at the moment.

Anya nodded with a muted sigh. “Of course, I do” she reassured their charge with honest brown eyes. She would certainly not forget the girl’s hateful words any time soon, but that did not change her own feelings towards their charge.

“I even managed to draw blood from Ontari” Marie declared with a proud glint in her grey eyes.

Anya raised her brows in silent question. She had seen the Ice Nation nightblood fight and no matter, how well Marie’s own training might have progressed in the last weeks, she was no where near skilled enough to be able to hold her own against Ontari in a real fight.

“I did” Marie insisted vehemently “Honest, she let her guard down, when she got me”.

Anya’s lips thinned in displeasure. Translated that meant as much as that Ontari had truly not wished to hurt Marie and had probably miscalculated the strength of her blow severely. The Ice Nation nightblood must have been startled and let her guard down to check on the younger girl. Marie must have used that distraction to draw some blood. But Ontari had not seemed wounded visibly, so Anya knew, that the wound inflicted by Marie could not have been serious. In a real fight, that would have meant, that Ontari would have simply slain the younger girl and Marie had fought too incautious.

“And I used her missing guard…” Marie continued to try to convince Anya, that she had fought well.

Anya stopped the girl’s words with a wave of her hand. “Fighting successfully is not only about drawing blood from your opponent, Marie” she tried to explain to the girl in a calm tone “It is rather about making sure, that no blood is drawn from you as well.”

Marie pursed her lips and she looked rather sullen now at being lectured like that.

Anya slightly rolled her eyes at the girl’s obvious sensitivity and she teased lightly “But, we will make a warrior out of you soon enough”.

Marie pouted with a rather dark look on her face, crossing her arms over her chest. Although the girl had gotten better at identifying Anya’s dry wit, she still needed more time to actually learn how to deal with it, when it was directed at herself.

Clarke and Lexa returned from the bathroom together in that moment.

Marie did not look up to them and was looking at the back of the couch accusingly.

Anya shortly caught the commander’s eye and her brown gaze wandered between both young women.  Both looked way too flustered to have just had a normal conversation and there had been no loud yelling either. She could easily see, how Lexa was trying to pull her emotions back under control, but the shine in her green eyes and the rosiness on her cheeks gave the commander away to her former mentor, without the need for any further words. The blonde woman had an even harder time to cover her unsettled state and Anya frowned slightly. It was not, that she did not wish for Lexa to regain some happiness for herself, but rather that a romance between both leaders would bring even more political tensions and as the commander’s general she needed to think of such consequences first.

Marie was totally oblivious to the silent observation going on around her and only looked up when Clarke addressed her, asking the younger girl, how she was feeling.

“It hurts” Marie instantly exclaimed and Clarke crouched down in front of the girl, feeling her pulse and temperature again.

The girl still looked too pale for her liking, but that was to be expected after a heavy blood loss and would hopefully right itself with time. Fortunately, the girl’s temperature did not feel too cold and the skin not overly clammy. The exhaustion on the girl’s face was apparent, so she hoped that letting her rest now would not be too soon to overlook possible signs of an insetting shock.

“She needs to eat and drink something” Clarke addressed both the commander and the general likewise “Afterwards, she can rest. But she needs to be watched, that her condition does not decrease”.

Anya nodded to acknowledge that she understood, she doubted she would be able to sleep now anyway, wanting to be absolutely sure, that their charge was alright.

Clarke and Lexa shared a long silent gaze, before Clarke cleared her throat awkwardly “I will retire now” she exclaimed. She nodded towards Anya and smiled slightly at Marie, before her blue eyes returned to Lexa “Reshop, Heda” she said with meaningful eyes.

“Good night, Clarke” Lexa answered, voice slightly deeper than usual.

Marie frowned as she watched Lexa and Clarke look at each other. The commander followed the blonde woman outside to ask one of the guards to order for something to eat to be brought into her quarters for Marie.

“Now they are acting a different kind of strange” Marie observed with confusion on her features.

Anya snorted lightly, trying to reign in the laughter wanting to bubble from her lips. As naïve and sometimes unmindful their charge could be, in other times she was extremely observant for someone so young.

Lexa must still have heard Marie’s observation because the commander looked rather disgruntled and lost for words.

Lexa was lucky, that Alira had already been in the process of bringing up dinner to the commander’s quarters and only a short moment later the doors were pushed open for the old handmaid, Risha accompanied the woman.

The wolf quickly caught Marie’s attention. The animal leapt at the girl with its tail wagging in obvious delight to see her human again. But the wolf cub stopped abruptly to smell at the girl’s trousers, which were still soaked in blood, and the bandage over the wound. Risha let out a slight whining howl as a reaction.

“It is not so bad” Marie seemed to try to reassure the animal and stretched her arm, to stroke the wolf’s muzzle.

Alira looked slightly worried to see the girl obviously wounded, she had not heard that anything had happened to her. Lexa reassured the woman, that Marie would heal and that her own wounds were healing nicely as well, trying to quell her obvious worries. The woman left again shortly after, promising Marie to bring her an extra honey cake for breakfast.

Marie was already yawing deeply, when Anya pressed a plate with food into her hands. The girl only picked at the foot, obviously not feeling really hungry, her eyes starting to droop.

“Marie” Lexa addressed their charge, slightly shaking her shoulder to stop her from falling asleep just yet. She took the plate of food away again, recognizing that the girl was actually too close to falling asleep already, to force her to continue to eat, but rather replaced the plate with a mug containing a sweet juice. Clarke had told them, that getting sugar and liquid back into the girl’s system was of utmost importance.

But the day had been extremely long for Marie. She had trained long hours with Anya, been emotionally upset and trained even more hours with Ontari later, so it was no wonder that the girl was so exhausted now.

Lexa retrieved a bowl of water and some cloth from the bathroom, the girl’s leg was still crusted with blood and that needed to be cleaned off, before they could put her into bed.

Marie was taking slow sips of the juice at first, before she suddenly downed the whole cup in one go, just realizing now how thirsty she was.

Anya shortly hoisted the girl up from the couch, the girl’s trousers needed to be removed as well.

Marie groaned and swayed on her feet, her arm shot out and she tried to hold herself up by grabbing at Anya’s frame. The pain which suddenly shot through her leg was immense and making her dizzy with dark blotches appearing in her field of vision.

Anya took off the girl’s boots for her, quickly untying the laces and discarding the boots on the side. They would need to be cleaned as well, blood had gathered in one of them, as it had run down Marie’s leg.

Marie had worn tight trousers made from leather and Anya fumbled to get them down the girl’s legs, while keeping her upright at the same time.

With an annoyed huff, the general took a dagger from her own thigh and simply sliced the garment open, taking the now rags from the girl’s legs.

Anya took the washcloth from Lexa’s hand, while the commander refilled the girl’s cup with more juice and then went over to a chest and rummaged through it, searching for lose fitting trousers which were soft enough to sleep in.

The general quickly cleaned the girl’s skin around the bandage from the remaining blood and helped her into the fresh pair of trousers.

“Can you walk?” Anya asked their charge in a critical tone, as she let go of the girl’s shoulders.

Marie’s features clearly showed in how much pain she was in and she immediately swayed on her feet at the loss of support from her mentor.

Anya sighed under her breath and carefully gathered the girl up into her eyes, trying not to jostle the injured leg too much. Judging from the pained groan pulled from Marie’s lips, she had not succeeded completely there.

The fact, that Marie did not ask Anya to stay with her in the bed, just showed how much the girl was truly exhausted. It seemed the girl had drifted off, as soon as her head hit the pillow.

Anya slightly shook her head as she tucked the furs around the girl’s frame. What a day that had been, she mused internally. She smoothed some blonde locks from the girl’s forehead and smiled slightly, when the girl seemed to lean into the caress.

Risha jumped onto the bed and curled up at the foot of the bed, obviously intent on sleeping as well.

Anya stepped over to the commander, who had sat down on an armchair. Lexa seemed to be deeply in thought and traced her fingers over her lips.

“So, you have kissed” the general observed in a teasing tone.

Lexa looked slightly startled and she could not quiet hide the blush rising over her cheeks. “We have” she finally admitted, there was no sense in trying to deny it to her former mentor. The older woman had always been able to read her very well and it seemed that it would never change.

“But…” she started, but faltered slightly. Talking about feelings was slightly unusual between them and Lexa was not entirely sure, that the general would wish to engage in talk like that.

“But?” Anya answered, taking up something to eat for herself. She had kept her voice low, although she doubted that they would wake up Marie.

“We have kissed already three days ago” Lexa told the older woman, not really meeting her eyes, but remembering the fleeting press of Clarke’s lips on hers and her own surprise at the act.

Anya raised a brow critically “That explains at least, why your mood was this bad. You could not face Clarke and she did not come here”.

Lexa sighed and nodded glumly. She did not know, if the blonde healer would have come on her own or if it had solely been her instinct as a healer to come into the commander’s quarters and offer aid.

“She has not forgiven me” Lexa proclaimed after a few moments of silence. She wished to earn the other woman’s forgiveness, although a part of her was convinced that there was nothing she could do to earn it, in fact did not deserve it as well.

Anya hummed nonchalantly, waiting for her former second to sort through her thoughts.

“I do not know, if I can ever earn it” Lexa said “Or even deserve to”. Her voice had a slightly bitter quality to it at the end.

Anya sighed, there was no piece of advice she could offer to the other woman. “Maybe Marie’s advice is not that off and she can forgive you. I guess a part of her already must have”.

“She said that she would try” Lexa told her former mentor.

“It will not be easy” Anya commented. When it had become clear, that feelings were growing between Lexa and Costia, she had cautioned both of them, what complications a romance between them would be bringing. She could understand in part, why Titus was trying to instil into the nightbloods, that being a commander meant to be alone. It made leading easier and offered no weak points to exploit for your enemies.

But Titus’ teachings also contained the fact that a commander could never have children, that the nightbloods were supposed to be the only children in the life of a commander. Marie may not be theirs by blood, but the girl had grown to be a sort of daughter to both of them and the people had accepted the Sky girl without much protest.

“I am aware” Lexa nodded with a downcast expression. She did not think, that she would survive to lose another love in the fashion she had lost Costia. Her eyes travelled to the bed and she thought that losing Marie would prove to be as painful and destroying to her.

How much her life had changed in the last months and in particular since the Sky people had crashed on earth. Marie had changed both of them and Lexa was sure that she had the unwavering loyalty of her general and Gustus at least, even if it would become public knowledge that she held feelings for the blonde Skykru leader. She was well aware that she would be needing this loyalty to keep herself in the position of the commander. She wished to show their people that they could live a life filled with peace and maybe she would be granted some amount of happiness for herself as well.

 

Chapter 143

The wound proved to be more painful and disturbing than Marie would have thought possible. Marie was used to sleep curled on her side, cuddling up to either Lexa or Anya. Under the effects of the tonic the girl had slept peacefully for some time, but as the tonic started to lose some of its numbing effects, she started to move around as her sleep got lighter.

Lexa and Anya joined their charge, when it became apparent, that she would not settle down again on her own.

Marie woke up only shortly later with a mixture out of a pained groan and a whine. She had rolled onto her side to cuddle up to Anya, putting her weight onto her wound.

“It hurts” the girl complained in a tired voice, glaring down at her leg pathetically. Her expression was half shadowed and half illuminated by the few remaining burning candles.

“You need to sleep” Lexa said lowly, as the girl had turned back to lay flat on her back.

“I don’t like sleeping on my back” Marie huffed and turned slightly to face the other woman. She pulled her legs slightly upwards and groaned again as the muscles shifted in her wounded thigh.

“Lay still” Anya reprimanded their charge, voice tinged with a strict tone.

“It throbs” Marie said after a moment of silence.

Clarke had told them, that their charge should not get more of the tonic for the night. It was too high concentrated and the healer feared, that Marie had lost too much blood already and the tonic would be too strong to be administered again so soon.

Lexa knew that Anya had very little patience for complaints like that, so she motioned the girl over to herself, waiting patiently until the girl had found a somewhat comfortable position, closing her eyes again and falling asleep, as Lexa lowly hummed the lullaby under her breath to the girl.

The night trudged by slowly and Lexa doubted she had slept more than a few minutes throughout.

Marie had been unable to stand from the bed in the morning, she had nearly collapsed as she tried to stand. Anya had caught the girl before her leg could give out and hoisted her back onto the bed, barely concealing her impatient expression. The general knew it might take Marie quiet some time to recover from the wound, before she could train again, not counting the chance that an infection might set in.

When Titus came into the commander’s quarters just as Alira brought breakfast, Anya left. The general had little patience left to hear whatever the flamekeeper had come to say and she was even grateful to have scheduled a training session with her unit in the early hours of the morning.

The flamekeeper looked as though he had not slept at all since the assassination attempt against his commander. He had several books and a few scrolls of parchment packed in his arm and Lexa furrowed her brow in silent confusion.

Alira had held true to her promise and had retrieved honey cakes for Marie to have for breakfast. Even though the pain had only intensified over the night, Marie still smiled gratefully at the kind gesture and devoured the first cake in a few quick bites.

“What is the meaning of this, teacher?” Lexa asked the flamekeeper, as the man had started to lay out several of his books onto an empty table.

But the man stayed silent, looking at Alira with almost distrustful eyes. Lexa immediately recognized that whatever had kept Titus busy had to do with Marie and her healing talent.

The handmaid bristled slightly under his obvious distrust, but she followed the commander’s mute dismissal instantly, only worry now reflecting in her dark eyes.

“What has happened?” the flamekeeper asked the commander, dark eyes flitting questioningly over Marie’s obvious injury.

“A training accident” Lexa answered, before Marie could open her mouth and elute to Ontari’s involvement. The commander knew, how hard the flamekeeper was already training the Ice Nation nightblood and she doubted he would see it as a severe loss if she died in training, so she did not wish to give him even more reason to accidentally kill her. The worry her former teacher now seemed to display for her second puzzled her though. She was aware that the flamekeeper had started to accept, that the girl would be staying by her side and had found a begrudging respect for her, but he had never expressed any other interest in Marie.

As the door fell finally shut behind the retreating handmaid, Titus turned to his various text. His blank features morphed into exasperation as he said “I have searched through every transcript, every journal, every prophecy, every whisper and every tale which was noted down and there is nothing”.

Lexa shortly glanced over to Marie. The girl was still eating the honey cakes, but she had slowed down and seemed to listen intently to what was being said. It would have bewildered her, if the girl was not interested to find out about her talent.

“There is not even the slightest hint to a power like this” Titus continued, looking through the texts again.

“Anya thought that she had heard a rumour of people who could heal with their touch among warriors of the Desert Clan” Lexa interrupted his search. She had read almost all of these texts as well during her time as a novitiate and she could not remember a single reference to powers which could be considered supernatural, like Marie’s healing talent clearly was. It was also entirely possible, that it was just an exaggerated story passed along by the fires of the Desert Clan and that Zora had told it to Anya and the general simply did not remember anymore, where she had heard of it.

“It simply has to be given to her by the spirits and the flame” Titus said while he was furiously scribbling a note to pass on to a messenger. “I will send…” the flamekeeper started to speak.

The commander interrupted him. She had stood up and glanced over his shoulder, reading what her former teacher was writing. “You will not” Lexa told the flamekeeper in a tone that left no room for discussion.

The bald man looked at the young commander with a ceased brow, internally wondering why she did not wish for him to inquire about what the Desert Clan might know. He had chosen his words carefully and although he agreed that it was not to become public knowledge, that the commander was now protected by someone gifted in healing, there was still a real possibility that the power had some sort of catch, they did not know of yet.

“It does not matter, where Marie has gotten this miraculous talent from, Titus” Lexa firmly said “What matters the most is, that we keep it as secret as possible.”

The flamekeeper nodded “She must be kept save and close to the commander to revive the vessel of the flame if needed”.

Lexa narrowed her eyes at the bald man, taxing him with a silent warning glare. It did not sit well with her at all, how Titus was now speaking about misusing Marie’s talent to protect the vessel of the commander. There was no guaranty that Marie would be able to heal whoever rose as the next commander at all, but she had not told the flamekeeper yet, that Marie’s healing power did not encompass all people.

“Heda, we must…” the man continued with an unflinching glance. It was obvious he had thought long about what he wanted to say and he would not be deterred.

“No, Titus!” she interrupted him with a firm tone “I do not wish to hear anymore about this. Leave us now!” her eyes were angry on the order.

The flamekeeper clenched his jaw visibly and his dark eyes flashed, but he inclined his head subtly and stood up, turned on the spot and stormed from the commander’s quarters.

Marie looked over at Lexa from the bed with confusion on her face. She did not like the way the flamekeeper spoke about her, but she would willingly protect and heal Lexa, making sure she would remain the commander for many years.

“You know, that I will always heal you, Lexa?” Marie asked tentatively.

The girl flinched slightly, as the commander’s angry gaze turned to her, before Lexa’s eyes softened.

“I know that, Marie” she agreed with absolutely sincerity. Lexa’s eyes were apologetic now. She did not doubt even for a moment that Marie would always heal every wound she suffered if she could. But she could not help but fear what retribution would await the girl. A talent so pure and good like healing wounds, even deathly ones, just with a single touch, had to have a price.

Her thoughts were interrupted from another knock. Clarke wanted to check on Marie’s wound. Lexa felt her features relax and a small smile tugged at her lips at the sight of the blonde woman.

“Good morning, Heda” Clarke greeted the brunette woman with meaningful blue eyes, before she turned to Marie “How are you feeling?”

“I cannot stand on the leg” Marie answered with a small pout on her lips, although the wound was still pulsing it annoyed her not to be able to move.

“You have tried to stand?” Clarkes asked with a raised brow, her voice slightly higher. It was obvious she was not pleased to hear that.

Marie shrugged nonchalantly “Of course” she retorted with a slight frown.

“You need to rest, Marie” Clarke stressed and turned to Lexa “She needs to stay of the leg for a few days. She could have already teared the stitches”.

Lexa nodded, sighing under her breath. She doubted Anya would have the patience to wait the healing process out, before wanting the girl back to training and judging from the last time Marie had been ill, the girl would quickly start to get bored, once the initial pain faded.

Clarke lips thinned, when she removed the bandage. Marie had indeed pulled some of the stitches. “I will need to removed them completely. Stitching over the partially pulled ones, will just make it more uneven”.

Marie’s grey eyes widened visibly when Clarke took a small dagger, intent to tear the remaining stitches.

Lexa moved over to the bed and sat down behind Marie, so that the girl could lean against the commander’s body, offering silent comfort to their charge.

Marie gritted her teeth, when Clarke did remove the remaining stitches and her face became visibly paler at the sight of new blood running down her leg.

Clarke’s blue eyes were almost apologetic, when she pushed the needle through the girl’s wound again to stitch it back together.

Marie was panting heavily and had taken hold of Lexa’s hand, squeezing them rather hard for support.

“You did well” Lexa assured the girl with a slight smile, when Clarke finally replaced the bandage after the stitches were finished.

Clarke’s smile at Marie was more pronounced, but there was also strictness in her expression when she said “Stay off that leg now, Marie. I do not wish to redo them a third time”.

Marie nodded fervently, she also had no wish to have to feel the pain of a third time as well. She had tried hard to stay as silent and still as possible through the whole process and she felt a little more appreciation for the warriors she had watched being tented to by Nyko in TonDC, who had all endured their treatments without so much as bating an eye.

“If you feel feverish or as if the wound is swelling, you must alert me immediately” Clarke briefed the girl in a strict tone. If a wound like that caught on infection, it could quickly become deadly, if not treated at once.

Marie nodded again. She knew what an infection would mean to her now and she still needed her leg.

“Has Laurel already changed your bandage?” Clarke had turned her gaze to the commander.

Lexa shook her head in the negative and after squeezing Marie’s shoulder gently, she stood from the bed, with the clear direction for Marie to try to rest. Lexa motioned Clarke into the bathroom and the blonde healer followed her without a word.

Lexa took of her shirt and stood in the middle of the bathroom, waiting for Clarke to remove the bandage around her abdomen.

Clarke let her gaze travel over the skin revealed to her eyes eagerly.

A knowing smirk tugged at Lexa’s lips, when Clarke’s gaze finally met her own, and it seemed as if the commander stood with a slightly puffed out chest.

Clarke pursed her lips, but as Lexa’s smirk visibly dimmed, the blonde sighed and said in amusement “There is no need for me to boost your ego even further and tell you, that you have a very beautiful body”.

“So, you think me arrogant?” Lexa asked with a slight furrow to her brow.

Clarke shook her head, with a gentle expression “No, but immensely self-assured.

When Lexa was still frowning at the healer in front of her, Clarke leaned up slightly and pressed a soft kiss to the leader’s lips.

“But I have heard and seen enough of you, to know that you have every reason to be” Clarke amended honestly. In her function as a healer, she had indeed heard many of the citizens of Polis almost worshiping their commander.

Her own brows furrowed as she inspected both wounds on the other woman’s body, the looked almost fully healed. “Has Marie healed them again?” she asked in confusion.

Lexa shook her head “I would have felt it, if she did”. The commander stepped in front of a mirror, inspecting the wound on her chest herself.

“They do not require a new bandage” Clarke assessed. She stood behind Lexa and inspected the wound on her back. As she placed her fingers gently over the freshly forming small scar, Clarke could not shake the image of Lexa’s black blood gushing out of the wound from her mind.

Lexa noticed the dark memory passing over the other woman’s face and she turned around slowly. Clarke’s hand over the commander’s body as she turned, now resting on her side gently.

“I am well, Clarke” Lexa reassured her in a firm tone, but with warmth in her green eyes. She placed her hand over Clarke’s fingers, still warm against her skin, and squeezed them reassuringly. “The nightblood makes us heal faster”.

Clarke blinked slightly as if waking from a daze. Lexa could not identify the whirlwind of emotions flashing through her blue eyes. “Months ago, after the Mountain, all I had wished to do, if we were ever to cross paths again, was to squeeze the life out of your body, watch you bleed out in front of me” Clarke said in a heavy tone.

Lexa only nodded mutely. She did not know, if she should step away from Clarke and give her space. But before she could decide on how to proceed, Clarke spoke up again.

Clarke had seen the flash of hurt in Lexa’s green eyes at her words, but there was also understanding and no judgement in the leader’s stare. “And as I sat there, trying to keep you from bleeding out and failing. All I thought about was, that I had wasted all the time between us with petty hurt and anger. I did not wish for you to die. I do not know, if I should trust you again…”

Lexa slightly shook her head, stopping the other’s words. Following an instinct at the moment, Lexa let herself fall to her knees directly in front of Clarke.

Clarke’s blue eyes widened at the gesture and confusion clouded her expression.

Lexa looked up at Clarke with absolute sincerity and her green eyes were expressive in their emotions as she said “I swear fealty to you, Clarke kom Skykru. I vow to treat your needs as my own and your people as my people.” Her voice was heavy and she remained on her knees in front of Clarke, patiently waiting for a reaction from the visibly stunned woman. Lexa did not wish to deal with Clarke on the basis of the commander, she wished them to be equal partners.

Clarke was overwhelmed by Lexa’s words for long silent moments and Lexa already feared with a sinking heart that Clarke would reject her words, when the blonde healer suddenly dropped to her knees as well, bringing them back onto the same level.

She still looked overwhelmed, but was smiling, when she kissed Lexa again. Lexa’s movements were slow and gentle against Clarke’s soft lips, giving the other woman enough opportunity to pull away and end their kiss, before she deepened it.

Lexa felt euphoric as their tongues met for the first time and it was as if an electric current ran trough her body, pulling a soft moan from her lips against her will. Lexa’s hands had slightly tangled into Clarke’s blonde locks, while Clarke’s hands wandered over her exposed sides, emitting a shiver to run over the commander’s body.

Both of them were breathing hard, when they finally parted for air, resting their foreheads against each other in an intimate gesture.

Lexa internally thanked whatever higher deities there might be, for granting her a second chance at love.

Clarke’s pupils were visibly elated and there was a flush to her cheeks, Lexa suspected that she was in a similar state. The smile that tugged at her lips, felt almost giddy at the moment.

Marie suddenly yelling at Risha to get down from the bed, pulled them apart completely.

Clarke shook her head with an amused smile, as she took Lexa’s outstretched hand and let herself be pulled to her feet. “Making it into bed together will be rather complicated” Clarke teased with twinkling blue eyes.

Lexa opened and closed her mouth without producing any words, unsure of how to react to the obvious jab. “I would never presume that you wish…” she started to justify her reaction, as Clarke’s amusement only increased.

“I know, Lexa” Clarke said with a dip of her head. It was blindingly obvious that Lexa would not assume anything. The commander may be self-assured but she was extremely humble at the same time, a combination Clarke had never seen before like that in anyone. “I wish for everything” she said, voice heavy and grave as she stared in the commander’s green eyes “Everything, that you can give me”.

 

 

 

 

 

Chapter 144

Clarke left the commander’s quarters with a smile still on her lips and a shine to her blue eyes, but she had promised Laurel to help with taking care of the sick in the capitol and was scheduled to meet the old woman soon. She would have preferred to stay with Lexa and spend the day with her in the privacy of the commander’s quarters, but she had the gnawing suspicion that Lexa would take up her duties again, now that her wounds were almost healed and she was not required to rest any longer.

Lexa asked Marie why she had shouted, slightly annoyed with the girl for the interruption. She was aware that the bathroom, with Marie sitting beyond the door, had not been the right place nor the fitting moment to deepen things with Clarke. But still, the moment their lips had touched, all sensible thought had left her mind, replaced by a growing need to feel the blonde’s skin beneath her fingers, to hear her moaning out her name and to watch her become undone beneath her administrations.

Marie complained that Risha had just jumped up the bed, nearly jumping onto her wounded leg.

“You need to teach her obedience, Marie” Lexa reprimanded the girl. She knew, if Anya was sitting here right now, the general would not have reprimanded the girl this gently. Anya was annoyed with the wolf’s lack of behaviour. As they let have Marie more freedom, the wolf was solely lacking in discipline as well.

Marie nodded with a slight pout. The wolf was sitting at the foot of the bed, almost scowling up at her human.

“I will join a meeting with the ambassadors now, Marie” Lexa proclaimed and started dressing herself with the pieces of armour signalling her station as commander. She knew that Titus had handled the daily business in Polis, but she had still been absent longer than she would otherwise and she felt better to hear the complaints herself and making the judgements herself. She just did not feel well leaving the coalition in Titus’ hands for prolonged time.

Marie’s face fell slightly, the prospect of being left alone in the commander’s quarters spoke of long hours of boredom. Anya could be gone for the training for several hours before she returned.

“You do not need to stay alone, Marie” Lexa offered “Who would you like to accompany you?”

Marie did not even think for a moment before she answered “Ontari maybe?” there was a tentative question in the girl’s tone.

Lexa’s lips thinned slightly, but otherwise she controlled the displeasure at the girl’s immediate answer. She would have preferred for Marie to wish for the company of Aden or one of the other nightbloods, but she could understand that Ontari would probably be worrying that she had seriously wounded the girl. Lexa and Anya still did not understand the growing friendship between the two unlikely girls and it worried Lexa slightly, that her words of caution had obviously been completely lost on their charge.

The commander nodded “I will have her summoned”.

Her voice must have shown the displeasure, she was trying to hide.

Marie looked slightly guilty and offered “It can be someone else as well”.

“It is alright” Lexa stopped the girl’s rambling and stood up “Lunch will be brought to you later. I will not return until later in the night”. After the meeting she would finally meet the nightbloods herself as well, assuring them that they did not have to fear an impeding conclave any longer.

Marie watched Lexa transform into the commander, as she changed into the armour of the commander. Her posture seemed to change and her whole demeanour almost screamed of power.

She smiled at the commander as she left her quarters, admiring the way the woman now looked like the very picture of a god, or at least what she would imagine a god to look like. She knew that she had been lucky everything had turned out the way it had, or she could very well had also ended up executed long weeks ago.

Marie waited patiently for steps to resonate through the hall and proclaim Ontari’s arrival. She did not have to wait very long.

Ontari looked visibly surprised why she had been summoned to the commander’s quarters, but the relieve was obvious on her features to spot only Marie in the rooms.

“How is your leg?” the nightblood girl asked immediately, stepping closer to the bed.

Risha stood in front of the bed, growling slightly at the nightblood. Ontari froze in her step, she was not armed at the moment and although the wolf was still young, she knew it could do some serious damage to her if it attacked her.

“Risha!” Marie addressed the wolf cub sharply, but Risha still growled threateningly at the Ice Nation girl, not minding her human.

Ontari carefully lowered a hand to the wolf’s muzzle, letting the animal sniff at her hand. All her muscles were tensed, ready to spring back in a second if needed, but after long moments, the wolf suddenly relaxed and licked at her fingers.

Marie looked visibly relieved, while Ontari frowned at the wolf, pulling her hand away again and walking around the animal, keeping her gaze locked onto it, if it changed its mind suddenly.

“It hurts” Marie answered honestly to Ontari’s first question. She told the older girl that she had pulled the stitches in the morning and that Clarke had renewed them for her.

“I am sorry” Ontari apologized honestly, voice slightly heavy with guilt. She had wounded and killed many people in the name of queen Nia and she had never felt any kind of guilt for the pain and death she had caused. Remorse and guilt were new feelings for her and it were not feelings she enjoyed. “I had not meant to hurt you more than with a few scratches”.

“I know” Marie retorted with absolutely conviction, that surprised Ontari into speechlessness for a moment.

 

Lexa left her quarters with a straight back and her head held high, she barely felt more than an uncomfortable pull from her wounds now and was grateful for the black blood running through her veins which had enhanced her healing process.

Gustus nodded to his young commander with a slight smile and compassion in his dark eyes. He was relieved to see the woman back on her feet and heading to retake her duties. He had seen Marie heal her wounds, but still the few days of the commander’s absence had been enough to start tensions between the ambassadors.

When the doors of the throne room were pulled open for the commander and she swept into the room, silence fell between the ambassadors. Varying degrees of shock flitted over several of their faces.

Lexa did not look over to them, until she had stridden through the room and turned around, casually sitting down on her throne and only then staring through the gathered crowd of ambassadors and sentries of the different clans. Most of the ambassadors looked relieved and Lexa believed in the honesty of their expressions. But she still noted on the expressions of the Ice Nation ambassador, the man which had been sent to replace the one she had kicked out of the tower, looked openly angry and disgusted. What worried her internally were the looks of fright quickly passing over the faces of the Rock Line and Lake People ambassadors. Both clans were near Trikru lands with the Ice Nation, if queen Nia managed to convince both clans to side with her and denounce the coalition, it would be a heavy blow to their coalition. The three clans together would be able to raise a huge enough army to openly declare war with the rest of the coalition. Lexa could not let that happen or what she had worked on for so long would be futile now.

She would send out spies into all three clans, trying to figure out how deep the connections between their leaders was and if they might know more about the failed assassination attempt on her.

What surprised her slightly, was the open relieve on Monty’s features. She doubted that the young man had any real compassion for her person, so it puzzled her, why he was relieved.

The meeting itself was not different from any other. Her absence had made them antsy, there had been unrest between a few ambassadors about trade agreements, trying to get more for themselves without the commander to negotiate between them, enforcing that weaker clans did not get exploited.

She quickly righted the ambassadors in their disagreements, reminding them that she was the one who ruled the coalition and had final say in every agreement, no matter how significant.

When she dismissed the ambassadors, Lexa halted Monty’s retreat, asking for a word with him in private.

The young man looked slightly startled at the request and the Rock Line clan ambassadors seemed to shout him a warning glare, before retreating from the throne room.

Lexa dismissed Titus and the guards, asking Monty to follow her onto the balcony. The snow was still falling around the capitol and the wind was icy when they stepped out onto the balcony.

“Heda” Monty respectfully said, inclining his head, but the young man quickly looked nervous under Lexa’s strong intense stare.

“Has someone approached you, Monty of the Sky people” Lexa asked the ambassador in a strong and unwavering voice, her green eyes boring into his dark ones.

Monty looked away from the woman for a moment, his eyes looking over the city beneath them. Much had changed for him in the few weeks he had now spent in the capitol. Kitara had been of enormous help in his quest to try to learn Trigedasleng as quickly as possible. She teased him about his pronunciation to no end, but he was now able to follow at least most conversations. He had spoken to Kitara about the Rock Line clan ambassador waiting for him in his quarters two days ago. The man had looked like a seasoned warrior and Monty had chosen his words as careful as possible. Kitara had advised him to speak with the general or the commander about the offer made to him.

Lexa could see the conflicting emotions flicker over the ambassador’s face, but she waited patiently for him to make up his mind. She knew that making him talk with force could only result in tensions between Skykru and the other clans and the vow she had spoken in front of Clarke echoed in her mind. Clarke regarded this boy as a friend of her and Lexa would not harm one of her friends, if she could help it.

“Yes” Monty finally agreed after long moments of silence. His dark eyes flitted to the door of the balcony, as if afraid someone would listen in on their conversation.

“Threats have obviously been made” the commander observed the skittish ambassador, who now looked more to be a boy than a man.

Monty sighed, before he nodded. Kitara had advised him to be absolutely honest, should he get the opportunity to speak to the commander. “The Rock Line Clan ambassador was in my quarters the day after the attempt was made on your life” he narrated cautiously “The man wanted to assure Skykru’s vote.”

“Vote?” Lexa asked with a furrowed brow. A suspicion dawned on her mind that the Ice Nation could try to convince the other clans to hold a vote of no confidence against her and by thus remove her from command.

Her suspicion was confirmed when Monty answered that the ambassador had seemed sure that the commander would not regain full health and needed to be removed to be replaced by a stronger commander.

“What was your answer to him, Monty?” the commander wanted to know, after a moment of silence. Thinking over fervently, that it seemed as if it could be necessary to interrogate all of the ambassadors to make sure of their continued loyalty to the coalition and she needed to broaden the network of spies in each clan and ask for word from those which were already in place. It was possible that an ambassador was acting on his own terms and decisions, but it would mean an even heavier blow to her position if the clan leaders had started to question her strength as the commander.

“Skykru will stand with you commander” Monty answered without hesitation “The Trikru have been generous to my people to let us stay on your land, commander, my people know that. We would not have survived through the winter without your help and the supplies you gave to us. We do not regard you as weak, Heda.”

Lexa inclined her head in silent acknowledgment, she felt a surge of gratitude to the calm boy. Even though Trikru had truly helped Skykru and ensured that they would survive through the winter, much blood had been shed between both of their people, enough for Skykru to have reason to side with another clan, if the clan offered a better deal. But she believed the young man, that he did not plan on betraying her. Titus had not been pleased with her initiating Skykru into the coalition, but if they would stand loyal to her, it would be enough to quell the flamekeeper’s doubt.

“I had not expected it to be this …” the boy hesitated for a moment, obviously searching for the right words “…like a power play of children”.

A slight smirk tugged at Lexa’s lips as she inclined her head again “Politics often are just that. Has Kitara been helping you? Your Trigedasleng has improved a lot”.

“She has” Monty nodded and a look of warmth passed through his dark eyes.

“May I ask you something?” Monty asked tentatively after a moment of silence.

Lexa inclined her head. It was obvious they boy was unsure of himself right now and probably afraid to be overstepping. She had not heard any complaints over him, so he had obviously settled in well into the capitol and his duties of an ambassador.

 “I was wondering if there were any customs regarding courting among Trikru?” Monty asked, the subject seemed to be embarrassing to him, as a slight blush covered his cheek.

Lexa blinked at the young man for a moment, astounded by his boldness to ask her such a question. She was glad, she had requested to speak with him in private, she doubted that even Gustus would have kept a straight face at such a question directed at his commander.

She slightly cleared her throat, feeling highly out of her comfort zone to be discussing courting rituals with the Skykru ambassador. “I assume you wish to court Kitara?” she asked not looking at the young man, but staring out over the city.

Monty nodded and the blush only increased noticeably.

“Simply let her know your intent” Lexa advised. There were in fact courting rituals, but none that Monty would be able to follow. He had no position to prove his ability to protect and care for possible children. “If that is all…” Lexa let her voice trail off in a silent dismissal and the young man took his cue after a slight nod and nearly fled from the balcony.

Lexa remained on the balcony for some time. She enjoyed the cold crisp air moving almost like a caress over her face.

She whipped around long moments later as she heard soft footfalls behind herself, a hand already on the dagger strapped to her thigh. Lexa relaxed her hands when she recognized Clarke behind herself.

“Has something happened?” Lexa asked with a slight frown as she had not expected to see the blonde healer.

“No” Clarke shook her head and an almost shy expression was on her face “I had actually just wanted to speak a moment with you”.

Lexa answered her words with a slight smile “Of course. You can stay to meet the nightbloods if you wish. I am expecting them later”.

Clarke nodded. She stepped closer to Lexa. The commander stood facing the capitol beneath them and her fingers laid on the cold railing of the balcony, while Clarke now leaned against the railing and looked straight at the other woman.

“About what did you wish to talk?” Lexa asked the blonde woman, looking at her with a gentle warmth in her green eyes.

“About us” Clarke answered bluntly, straightening slightly. She had made up her mind and wished to see what could develop between them.

Lexa nodded with a cautious expression, as much as she wished to follow her heart, she knew that she would be putting Clarke into danger. “You know that the day that we owe nothing more to our people will probably never come” the commander said with a slightly heavy voice “I am the commander, always, and only my death is going to change that. You know what happened with Costia…” Her voice trailed off and a dark look passed over Lexa’s face as memories of finding her lover’s head in her bed clouded her mind.

Clarke frowned as she looked at the older girl. She had never seen the weight of Lexa’s position resting more heavily on her shoulders, which she knew were not that broad under her armour. “You do not wish for…” she started to say, but Lexa interrupter her.

“This has nothing to do, with what I wish, Clarke” Lexa said vehemently “I do wish for us to become more, I wish it much more than I should. But it puts you in danger. I do not want to see you get hurt because you are mine”.

“I am not Costia” Clarke insisted, keeping her voice strong but calm “It is my choice if I want to be with you, Lexa.”

Lexa sighed visibly and her body seemed to deflate somewhat “Costia said the same thing. I had promised to protect her, keep her save. I know now how foolish a thing to promise that was. And I know that I can never promise you safety”.

Clarke watched the emotions flash through Lexa’s green eyes and she felt a surge of compassion for the leader. The woman would clearly let her go if she decided that loving the commander was too dangerous, it seemed even that Lexa would prefer her to make exactly that choice, but she would not be deterred now. She knew of the dangers, but she was already in danger. “I am Wanheda now, Lexa” Clarke said ruefully “It might even be a match of strength your people could accept” she mused after a moment with a slight smirk.

Lexa raised a brow “That is no matter to joke about, Clarke. Mockery is not…”

“…not the product of a strong mind. I know, Lexa” Clarke retorted with a slight roll of her blue eyes. Her expression turned serious a moment later “I know, that it is a break in tradition for the commander to be with someone”.

The commander slightly shook her head “It is not, not really. There have been commanders before to have a partner. But it never ended well.”

Clarke sighed “You do not really sound, as if you truly want us to become … something” she settled on after a moment.

Lexa looked up sharply, her eyes nearly burning in their intensity and her fingers were ice cold as she grasped onto Clarke’s hands “I do, Clarke. But as the commander…”

Clarke pulled a hand from the commander’s grip and gently placed a finger on the other woman’s lips, silencing her words efficiently “I do not ask the commander, Lexa, I ask you. I did not fall for the commander, Lexa. I know that I cannot have you without the commander, as you are one”.

Lexa smiled slightly at the other girl. It was obvious that the blonde healer had thought long about what it would mean to be with her and about the dangers associated with that as well. “It will not be easy” Lexa finally said, when Clarke removed her fingers from the commander’s plump lips and gently caressed her jaw.

“I know” Clarke assured the other woman and when Lexa leaned into her gentle caress slightly, she leaned forward and connected their lips in a soft kiss.

“It will not be long before there will be rumours” Lexa breathed, when they separated again “I want a guard to accompany you, always”.

Clarke sighed, but she inclined her head in agreement. It was obvious that Lexa already feared for her safety and if a guard would put her mind at rest, Clarke would accept a guard, even though she regarded that as unnecessary.

Lexa was the one to lean over and kiss the other woman again, relieved that the stubborn blonde accepted the guard without putting up a fight, which she had expected beforehand. Her cold fingers gently scraped over Clarke’s neck, sending shivers through her body as they kissed, when Gustus announced the arrival of the nightbloods and pulled them apart and from the balcony.

 

 

Chapter 145

The nightblood children were all visibly happy to see their commander on her feet. Aden and Thalu looked relieved, both of them seemed paler and tired, as if they had spent the last days worrying over the prospect of the conclave hanging over their heads. Lexa assured them, that she was fine and that the assassination attempt had clearly failed, she left out Marie’s involvement in her healing though.

When they spotted Clarke, who had remained on the balcony for a moment, simply watching the reunion between the nightbloods and Lexa from afar, the children straightened and curiosity was obvious on their faces. Clarke’s features were friendly and open and a smile was on her lips.

She patiently answered the children’s questions about the life they had had on the Ark.

Lexa watched on with fond amusement dancing in her green eyes as her novitiates asked Clarke questions, similar to how they had done already with Marie many weeks ago. They all knew more about Skykru now, so their questions had changed a lot from the ones they had asked Marie.

 

After Marie and Ontari had talked with each other for some time, which mostly consisted of Marie blabbing about something and Ontari only nodding every now and then, the younger girl had run out of things to say and lunch was brought in by Alira.

The handmaid’s smile was honest when she looked at the commander’s second, but her smile froze visibly when her eyes connected with the Ice Nation nightblood.

“Do you need anything?” Alira asked Marie, when she handed her a plate with food.

Marie shook her head with a bright smile and a thankful nod and the handmaid left again.

Ontari watched the woman leave and snorted under her breath, shaking her head in disbelief.

“What?” Marie asked, head cocked to the side in confusion at the older girl’s reaction.

Ontari’s dark eyes held something Marie could not decipher as she said “It is a wonder that they all seem to love you”.

“They don’t” Marie denied immediately with a frown. What should such a statement even mean?

Ontari huffed with a roll of her eyes, but did not comment any further.

They ate their lunch mostly in silence and Ontari was slightly surprised to see, that they did not receive anything more extravagant than what she was given daily in the tower. She had expected that the commander’s quarters would only receive the best, but she had somehow already guessed that Lexa was not the kind of leader to exploit her position like this.

Ontari frowned, when Marie took up a second plate after the first, which only seemed to hold small pastries. The girl offered her some of it, but she reclined. She was not used to sweet things like this, they rarely had something like this in the lands of the Ice Nation. It was obvious though that Marie enjoyed the small treats greatly.

Marie prompted her again to try one of the pastries and with a huff Ontari took one, biting off a small bite and tasting the thing cautiously. It was disgustingly sweet and she pulled a face, prompting an open laugh from Marie.

Ontari frowned at the younger girl laughing at her, but the girl still looked friendly and did not seem to laugh out of malice, so tentatively she joined in. It was a strange feeling to laugh with someone like that on her own expense, her usual reaction would have been to lash out.

When Marie stopped laughing, she picked up a book and held it toward Ontari with the plea “Read to me”.

Ontari grasped the book unsurely. She had been taught how to read, but not very well, the focus of her education, if you wanted to call it that, had always been fighting.

She opened the page of the book, which was marked and stared at the page with a frown, it was written in Gonasleng. She knew, that she was able to fluently speak the language, but reading it out loud was different.

“…And then, once you had man…mana…managed to find them, there were the classes th…the...themse…themselves. There was a lot more to magic, as Harry quickly found out, than waving your wand and saying a few funny words. They had to study the night skies through their tel…tele…teles…telescopes every Wednesday at midnight and learn the names of different stars and the mov…move…movem…” Ontari tried to read out loud to Marie and stumbled over a lot of words, as she did.

“…movements…” Marie chimed in helpfully “You can’t read very well” she commander with a slight frown.

Ontari closed the book with a snap, glowering at the younger girl, slightly offended “There is no sense in books” she snapped.

“Lexa says there is wisdom in books” Marie proclaimed with a frown “You need to sharpen your mind, just like you sharpen your blade on a whetstone and books are the whetstone of your mind”.

Ontari rolled her eyes at the comment, choosing to stay silent instead. After some prompting she did open the book again and continued to try to read to the younger girl.

Ontari stayed with Marie for a few hours, until Anya returned from the training pits. The general’s brown eyes visibly narrowed at the sight of the Ice Nation nightblood sitting comfortably on the commander’s bed next to Marie.

Marie only smiled shortly at Anya, before her eyes were drawn back to the book in Ontari’s hands. Anya watched with a furrowed brow how their charge was obviously in the process of honing the other girl’s reading skills in Gonasleng. 

It was obvious quickly that Ontari did not wish to continue trying to read out loud in front of the general and Anya simply told her to go back to the conclave and join them in training, as she would stay with Marie for now.

Marie visibly shuddered as Anya cracked her knuckles loudly, to realign them after a long and strenuous training session.

“One of the carpenters is going to make a crutch for you” Anya proclaimed to Marie, ignoring the girl’s reaction completely. That way their charge would at least be able to attend a few meetings and theoretical lessons, instead of sitting idle in the commander’s quarters for several days.

“When will Ontari share quarters with the other nightbloods?” Marie asked suddenly, after nodding to Anya’s previous statement.

Anya stopped in her movements, having been in the process of taking off her armour, and furrowed her brow critically. Marie had startled her with the seemingly out of the blue question. “Has she complained about that to you?” Anya inquired, wanting to know where the question came from.

Marie shook her head, honesty shining in her grey eyes, mixed with compassion. “No, she has not. I doubt, that she would though. But I know what it is like to be kept in isolation, it sucks” the girl commented and a shiver visibly ran through her body as memories of her time within the Skybox resurfaced.

Anya lightly shook her head, it was a mystery to her how the girl still managed to have this much compassion for everyone else. “It is for Lexa and the flamekeepers to decide” she finally answered the original question after a few moments. If she had any say, the Ice Nation nightblood would remain isolated and heavily guarded until the next conclave after Lexa’s death, which hopefully would not be held for several years.

Marie only hummed in response, her eyes still trailing over the sides of the book from the world before them.

“You should be reading the first commander’s journal and not this thing” Anya reprimanded their charge, a slight bite to her tone.

With the faintest blush to her cheek Marie closed the old novel ruefully and turned her best big wide-eyed stare at the general “But it is only written in Trigedasleng now, it is hard to read” the girl complained “And it takes forever...” as her voice trailed off, she gestured widely to emphasis her words.

Anya rolled her eyes and stared down at the girl with strict features “That is because you lack practise” she chided “Which you are not going to get, if you do not keep on trying”.

Marie pouted slightly, but accepted the first commander’s journal from Anya with only little reluctance obvious within her expression. The girl seemed to overthink her reaction quickly as she asked “Can you help me?”

The general nodded, sighing under her breath. She was able to read and write, but it had never been one of her favourite activities, she preferred to actually do something active with her hands instead. She settled down onto the bed carefully intent not to jostle her charge’s injured leg too much.

“No signs of an infection?” she inquired. It looked like the bandage was slightly strained with seepage, but it did not look like actual bleeding. It would still need to be changed again sometime soon.

Marie shook her head “But Clarke had to redo the stitches” the grimace was clear in the girl’s voice. “And she said that I am not to stand up at all or that I would pull the stitches again” Marie enumerated to which Anya only nodded in mute acknowledgment, the general had not expected differently.

When Marie opened her mouth to keep on conversing with Anya, the woman narrowed her eyes at her charge and pointed at the book in the girl’s hands. It was clear that the girl had simply tried to divert her attention from the task of practise, but Anya would have none of that.

Marie sighed under her breath, but she obliged the silent order immediately.

Anya knew that Lexa would have been better suited to help Marie in practicing her reading skills of Trigedasleng. The commander had a better skill in it and was far more patient with children, but Anya thought she held up very well and tried to keep her caustic comments to a minimum.

To Lexa and Tris her barbs had always been like further incentive, but Anya had to recognize that it had the opposite effect on Marie most of the time. The blonde girl mostly reacted unsurely and obviously questioned herself afterwards and how much truth may have been in her mentor’s words, so Anya now had to think more carefully about what she said.

 

Clarke had been happy enough to answer all of the nightbloods questions. She was intrigued with the novitiates. Lexa had explained to her prior that these children were raised in the capitol so that one of them could ascend as the next commander after her own death. But to her it was obvious that they all were still children, she could see facets of Lexa in all of them and it was apparent that the commander had spend a lot of time with them. Clarke did not know yet what the conclave truly was, but she had wondered why the novitiates were all so young. She had a suspicion what the conclave entailed, but she would need to ask Lexa for specifics.

After the novitiates left the throne room, Clarke and Lexa stayed alone.

“You said your successor would be chosen by reincarnation” Clarke started carefully “How does this work exactly”.

Lexa sighed under her breath, she knew that Clarke was asking after the conclave. She rarely thought about her own conclave, much less spoke about it. After her own ascension she had been haunted by nightmares about having to kill the other novitiates during the conclave. They had grown up as brothers and sisters, friends united by the same fate and although she had tried to keep a certain distance to the other novitiates, she had still felt for them. Pictures arose in her mind unbidden of how the younger novitiates who had barely passed their sixth summer had not even put up a fight during the conclave, silently asking for a quick and painless death.

She straightened herself, feeling the calm and stony mask of the commander settle over her features. Even years later the memories of the conclave hurt deeply. “When I die, the spirit of the commander will leave my body” Lexa explained in a calm and even tone “We believe that the commander’s spirit will give strength and guide the novitiate who is meant to become the next commander.”

Clarke nodded with a slight frown “What happens at the conclave? And what happens with the novitiates who are not chosen as the next commander?”

Lexa looked out of the window of the throne room shortly, snowflakes were dancing outside whipped around by a strong breeze. “Novitiates who have passed their sixth summer will compete against each other in the conclave. It is a fight to the death”. She remembered vividly how the sand in the arena had turned muddy and black after it had been soaked with the blood of the fallen nightbloods.

The commander had turned her back to the blonde woman, unwilling to watch the emotions flash through her blue eyes, judging her undoubtedly. She could still hear Clarke inhaling sharply.

“So, you had to kill the children you grew up with to become the commander” Clarke finally said after a long pause, her voice was wavering slightly.

Lexa nodded stiffly, still not meeting Clarke’s eyes.

“How many others had been competing against you?” Clarke wanted to know, sensing that Lexa would not share the information without prompting. She could imagine how hard it must have been to live with what she had to do.

“Eight” Lexa answered curtly “But one ran away in the night before the conclave”.

“How old have you been at the conclave?” Clarke asked tentatively. The tension in the other woman’s body was apparent and she could understand her reluctance to speak about the conclave.

“I was 12 summers old” Lexa answered with a sigh.

“12?!” Clarke echoed with such disbelieve that Lexa turned back around to face the younger woman with a raised brow.

“Age matters little to my people” Lexa offhandedly added.

Clarke nodded, swallowing forcefully. She looked at the throne shortly and could not stop her mind from conjuring the picture of what she assumed Lexa must have looked like after her ascension. The armour of the commander still looked enormous on her frame, but a twelve-year-old girl must have looked ridiculous even.

“I truly cannot imagine twelve-year-old commanding whole armies” Clarke finally commented. How could such a young girl have gotten the respect of her people? How did Lexa manage not to crumble under the guilt? She was still haunted by the bubbled and contorted faces of those she had killed in the Mountain. But having grown up with those Lexa had to kill, was something Clarke could not even begin to fathom.

“And yet I built the coalition” Lexa countered, pride clear in her green eyes. She believed that the coalition was the only way to unite the clans and by thus work towards lasting peace which could finally allow all of the clans to thrive.

Clarke nodded in mute agreement, she had not meant to offend the older woman. “How old are you now anyway?” she wanted to know next, steering the conversation away from Lexa’s own conclave.

“I have seen 21 summers now” Lexa answered easily, the tension slowly draining from her frame. She would tell Clarke more about the conclave someday.

Clarke raised a brow “So, you have been commander for nine years now. How long does a commander’s reign normally last?”

Lexa’s features became sombre in the blink of an eye before she formulated her answer “The commanders before me usually reigned between two and five years. So, I have long outlived my life expectancy if you want to put it like that.”

A frown settled on Clarke’s face and it was obvious she worried for Lexa, but the commander refrained from commenting that the novitiate who would take her place would protect her, aware that her assurance would not ease Clarke’s mind at all.

“But I have also been the only commander to unite the clans under one flag” Lexa reasoned, still trying to ease the blonde’s worry “I hope to continue my reign for many years”.

“You better do” Clarke commented almost sharply “I need your spirit to stay where it is. I do not want the next commander, but you. And I am the commander of death now and I do not allow you to die”. Her words had been passionate and Lexa’s green eyes danced with fond amusement and a smile pulled at the corners of her lips.

“Would there not be another way of choosing the commander?” Clarke asked after a moment, a slight blush was colouring her cheeks at Lexa’s silent reaction to her passionate short speech.

Lexa sighed under her breath. She had spent a lot of time pondering on exactly that question. The problem was that she had changed so much already in the last few years that such a big change would only be met with resistance if she tried to push it through forcefully. Her people believed in strength and what better way to show superior strength than to compete in a fight to death? If she managed to maintain her role for more years, she might come to a point where she could convince Titus and the other flamekeepers of another system, which would not require the death of all novitiates, but this were thought to contemplate in the future.

“There might be” Lexa conceded “But it is not the time yet to make such changes. With tensions rising again, it would only make people question my strength again if I tried to change the conclave now”. There was regret in Lexa’s voice and Clarke stepped closer to the older woman, softly taking the commander’s hand and giving them a squeeze.

Lexa smiled almost ruefully at the blonde “I do not wish for my novitiate to have to go through the same…” her voice trailed off, wavering noticeably.

Clarke nodded “You will find a way to change the conclave. You managed to form the coalition and bring peace to the clans, there is probably nothing you cannot do”. She smiled at the commander reassuringly, voice full of conviction and she leant up to place a loving kiss on Lexa’s full lips.

 

 

 

Chapter 146

The weeks passed quickly as Marie was still confined mostly to the commander’s bed. A week after her injury Anya had brought her a cane to lean on, so that she could at least accompany Lexa to her meetings again. 

The snow had started to melt when Clarke finally could remove the stitches from the girl’s leg. The wound had formed an even long scar on Marie’s upper thigh and the girl was oddly proud of her first real training scar.

Clarke and Lexa had spent as many private little moments with each other as possible. But Lexa had outright refused to stay overnight in Clarke’s quarters and with Anya and Marie still residing in the commander’s rooms, there had not been a chance yet of truly spending a night with each other. Neither of them minded that much, Lexa was happy enough to spend a few minutes with the blonde healer each day and simply get to know her a little better with conversations held over lunch.

Clarke herself had also been occupied. The citizens of Polis had fully accepted her as a healer now and she was now officially working as one of the healers of the tower. She had been quite surprised when Lexa requested to receive some teaching from her in healing and even more so when the commander asked if she would be willing to teach the nightbloods as well. Titus had not pleased with the addition to the nightbloods tutelage, but Lexa had simply overruled his reluctance.

Clarke had started to enjoy the company of the nightbloods and gotten to know them much better. The children had at first been rather hesitant with her, when they were left alone with her for the first time, but quickly enough she had earned their liking and now looked forward to teaching them for an hour a day.

In exchange for teaching Lexa about the art of healing, Clarke requested to be taught some basic fighting skills as well. She had not argued with the commander about a guard now always accompanying her through the streets, but she wanted to be able to protect herself as well and she had stopped carrying around her gun long ago. Lexa had been hesitant to agree and she said that she would not be the one to truly teach Clarke, but that she would ask Anya to do so. Clarke had frowned at the denial and when prompted for a reason Lexa had reluctantly admitted that she would not be able to efficiently teach Clarke out of an unwillingness of hurting her.

Anya had agreed to the request of teaching Clarke with a gruff huff. She still did not like the blonde young woman, but she agreed that Clarke direly needed some fighting skills. She had insisted to Lexa that she would not go easy on Clarke and that she did not wish for her former second to interfere, so if she was to train Clarke, it would be on her terms and with her techniques without criticism from Lexa. The commander had agreed easily enough, she was aware that her general would not injure Clarke on purpose, although she doubted that Clarke had any true incline for what she had asked in the first place.

After Clarke had taken out Marie’s stitches, her first training session with Anya would be taking place. The general hovered behind her impatiently, but she was relieved that her charge could finally take up training again as well.

Lexa was in a meeting with the Glowing Forest ambassador who reported that sightings of mutated beasts were becoming more and more frequent at their borders.

Clarke nodded to Anya after she had put away her medical equipment. Although she had asked to learn how to fight, she was a lot less enthusiastic about the training now that she was truly faced with it. She remembered her fight with the older woman in front of the drop ship and she was well aware that she did not stand a single chance at defence against the general under fair conditions. If Anya wished she could kill her with probably just a single attack, although she highly doubted that Lexa would let her mentor kill her.

Marie was a lot more enthusiastic about the prospect of returning to training and was smiling radiantly. She had not left the tower even once after her injury and now that the temperature was rising again she was looking forward to spending time out in the sun. Anya had predicted that spring would be short and that it would warm quickly, apparently that usually happened after a harsh winter.

Risha had grown a lot over the whole winter and nearly did not look like a cub anymore at all now. The wolf reached up almost to Marie’s middle, but was still playful and soft around the girl. Anya had had a huger impact on the wolf’s training than Marie, but they were satisfied with how the animal behaved now.

The nightbloods were in the middle of a training session with Titus as well. Anya had decided to hold the first training session with Clarke in the secluded area normally reserved for the conclave, it would not do for the people to see Wanheda being beaten too easily.

She instructed Marie to run a few rounds around the field, turning to Clarke next. The blonde young woman did not look muscular but was rather lean and soft, she would also need to built up muscle first and her endurance would probably be short as well. Risha followed on Marie’s heels, running with the girl with a wagging tail, obviously enjoying the activity well enough.

As Anya had predicted Clarke lacked almost everything when it came to fighting, just like Marie had in the beginning. The general’s lips thinned visibly after she had tried to gauge the girl’s abilities and found them lacking. It would take a long time to get even the basics through to Clarke, she was not as young as Marie anymore and she had not found any inherent talent within the healer. The only thing that Clarke truly seemed to be was stubborn and Anya hoped that her stubbornness would be enough to endure the training regiment she would push her through.

Sweat was already running down Marie’s back when Anya finally called an end to her rounds and she was breathing heavily. Fortunately, the wounds in her leg seemed to have healed completely and she did not feel any pain from it.

Anya instructed Marie to face off with Clarke and afterwards manoeuvred Clarke’s limps into a fighting stance, signalling to them to start attacking each other.

Clarke’s brows were furrowed and it was obvious she did not wish to fight with Marie.

Marie herself looked a little unsure for a moment, but she straightened herself after Anya pointedly glared at her.

“Do not hold back!” Anya shouted sharply at Marie. The girl nodded and faced Clarke.

Although Clarke was of course taller and had more mass than the younger girl, Marie was able to beat Clarke with relative ease.

They trained with each other for some time. Anya watched both of them carefully, yelling instructions and criticism alike from time to time. All in all, the general was satisfied with Marie’s efforts and she had not expected more from Clarke.

Clarke felt exhausted and bruised when Anya finally called an end to their training. She already felt the heaviness settling into her limps from overuse and little injuries. She had severely misjudged the younger girl’s skill and was internally impressed with Marie’s progress. She doubted that any of the 100 would stand a chance against their youngest member now.

She was discretely rubbing at a tender spot on her backside, on which she had landed more often than she had anticipated, on the way back to the tower.

Marie was walking beside Anya with a childish and happy skip to her steps, Risha following her heels.

Anya narrowed her eyes at her charge “I hope you will move with more consideration when we go hunting tomorrow”.

“We are going hunting?” the girl asked enthusiastically and her grey eyes already shined with wonder.

Anya nodded curtly. She had spent too much time in the capitol without a change of scenery and she itched to get back into the woods and see something else than the streets of Polis. Marie had never been on a longer hunting trip and now that the weather was easing up, it was the perfect time to do such an excursion. She had already spoken with Lexa about her intention and the commander had agreed that it would be good for both of them. Secretly Lexa was looking forward to have her quarters to herself and spend some time with Clarke in complete privacy.

“Are we going to look for ice bears?” Marie checked eagerly.

Anya frowned “Certainly not” she answered with finality to her tone. Although she did plan to travel a distance from Polis, she did not plan on travelling into Azgeda land.

Marie deflated slightly, but she was still smiling “Can Risha accompany us?”

The general thought for a moment “We shall see how the horses react to her. But it would probably be better to train your wolf first to follow the horses close enough before that.”

Marie nodded as the reasoning made sense to her. She knew how the horses used to react to Risha even when she had still been a cub and she doubted that now that the wolf was grown it would be any easier for a horse.

Once they reached the commander’s quarters Marie eagerly relayed to Lexa how she had trained with Clarke and beaten her several times. Clarke had accompanied them into the commander’s quarters having been invited for dinner beforehand.

Lexa had finished with the meeting in a reasonably short amount of time. She had promised to send a convey of warriors into the land of the Glowing Forrest to try to erase the mutated beasts. The rest of the clans were suspiciously quiet and calm at the moment and Lexa was feeling anticipation because of the lack of unrest.

Marie had gotten used to Clarke being in the commander’s quarters more and more often and did not seem disturbed by her presence at all. Clarke had also started to instructed Marie in basic healing techniques, the girl had at first been confused why she would need such skills. She could heal Lexa and Anya at will and in her mind that was enough, but Lexa had quickly convinced her that basic skills in healing could not go amiss.

Anya on the other hand was rather annoyed by Clarke’s now almost constant presence in the commander’s chambers and was well aware that Marie and she were outliving their welcome and direly needed to move back to their own rooms. The constant romantic tension between both women was ruining her appetite. Marie did not seem to be put off by their behaviour at all, as if she did not seem to notice it at all.

Lexa’s green eyes immediately skimmed over Clarke’s body, searching for injuries the blonde woman might have acquired during training.

Anya barely suppressed the urge to roll her eyes at the open display of worry, while Marie already helped herself to a honey cake. “Lay that back down this instant” the general strictly reprimanded their charge and pointed at some vegetable and meat “Eat a regular meal first, then you may have a cake as desert”.

Marie pulled a face but she put the cake back onto a plate obediently. Anya had already banned her from treats of any form for a few days when she had disobeyed before and no matter how much she had tried to ask Lexa or Alira to sneak her a treat, both women had not budged.

Anya excused herself to return to the training pits, letting the other three alone. She would also need to organise some preparations for their hunting trip if she wanted to go tomorrow at dawn.

“Anya was not as annoyed as I had anticipated” Lexa teased the blonde woman with amusement dancing in her green eyes after the general had left.

Clarke narrowed her eyes at the commander “Thanks for the vote of confidence” she shot back grumpily.

Marie looked at the commander with confusion but she kept silent and ate her dinner mutely.

“Will you go hunting with me and Anya?” Marie asked once the plates had been cleared.

“No” Lexa shook her head. After the fallout between Marie and Anya their relationship had not completely recovered and Lexa was convinced that time on their own together would help ease the general’s mind for good. Marie visibly pouted at that but Lexa ignored her expression and send her to the bathroom to get ready for the night.

The commander turned to Clarke once the girl had closed the door behind herself “I did not mean to upset you” she amended her prior barb.

Clarke shook her head with a soft smile “I know. Anya did not bite my head off, so that must count for something”.

Lexa could not help herself and laughed out loud at that comment.

Clarke smiled at the sight, she rarely saw Lexa genuinely laugh and she was pleased to no end with herself to have caused that sound to emanate from the young leader’s lips. Her green eyes seemed to twinkle and she looked completely carefree for a moment.

“What?” Lexa asked finally after the laughter had died a few moments later.

“Nothing” Clarke answered still smiling with a loving expression “I have never heard you laugh like that before”.

Lexa’s expression sobered slightly “There has not been much to laugh about in the last years”.

Clarke nodded again and took the commander’s hand over the table giving it a squeeze “I should retire now”.

Lexa nodded although she stopped Clarke before she could leave. She stood up from her chair and crossed the distance between them with two quick steps, evading Clarke’s personal space with an intense gaze. She gently caressed Clarke’s jaw, where a bruise was forming under her fair skin “Goodnight Clarke” she breathed against her soft lips.

“Goodnight Lexa” Clarke echoed a little breathless. No matter how faint and soft their touches were, they made her head spin and her heart beat faster in her chest and she was burning for the time they could finally take things further. She knew without the single shred of a doubt now that she loved Lexa with every fibre of her being and she was glad they had taken their time to really get to know each other a little better before things could heat up between them. There was still so much she did not know about the other woman and she was sure that she could spend the next decades at Lexa’s side and still not know all of her facets.

It was later in the night that Anya finally returned to the commander’s quarters. All was organized for the next morning and she was almost impatient for the time to pass.

Marie seemed rather antsy as well and they had great difficulties to get the girl to settle down to sleep at all. It was obvious that the prospect of her first long hunt was exiting their charge immensely.

Anya had decided against heading out with a large group but rather for going out only with Marie. The girl’s riding skills would be enough now to allow her to steer her own mount and by going out alone Anya could repeat basic lessons on how to built a camp for the night.

“When do you plan to return?” Lexa asked Anya in the near darkness of her quarters, once Marie had finally drifted off to sleep. The girl’s nightmares had gotten scarcer in the last weeks, but she still enjoyed snuggling up to one of them during the night and was now pressed against the commander’s side.

“In a moon at most” Anya replied. They had worked out the route she planned to take together with her former second, choosing terrain which would be easy enough to travel with the melting snow and would offer enough shelter and was far away from the border to Azgeda.

“Take care of her for me” Lexa said after a moment of silence. It did not need explanation that she meant their charge.

Anya nodded with a grave expression on her features. She would protect Marie to her last breath if needed but they did not anticipate for them to encounter any trouble.

The night passed relatively quickly and Marie was already lying awake when Anya finally rose the next morning.

“Have you slept at all?” the general asked the girl gruffly as she carded fingers through her blonde tresses.

“I am soooo exited” Marie answered almost buzzing with energy.

“That much is obvious” Anya commented drily and stood up from the bed, waking Lexa as well in the process.

The whole time Marie got ready Lexa stood behind her and lectured her about every little detail of their hunting trip and on things she should avoid or where to be even more careful. It was obvious that the commander was annoying their charge with her speech and Anya snorted under her breath as she dressed into her own armour.

Lexa insisted on accompanying them to the stables and seeing them off herself. Anya found that totally unnecessary but Marie seemed happy enough to wave back at the commander as they rode out of the city with the sun just rising on the horizon.

Marie had been given an older horse which was as tame as a lamb and should not give their charge any trouble. Risha had stayed behind in the capitol after the horse had started to bolt when the wolf came closer. 

Marie greatly enjoyed their trip on the first two days. It was still cold but the clothes kept the biting chill at bay.

Anya was satisfied with the amount of things Marie still remembered about their lessons and the girl had gotten much better at looking for traces and listening to the sounds of nature around herself. In addition, Marie had picked on quickly on what needed to be done to raise a makeshift camp and proved to be rather apt at cooking as well.

The horses were oddly anxious on the dawn of the third day. Anya and Marie had fastened them to a low branch of a tree, allowing them to graze while erased their little camp. They worked much better together than Anya had anticipated and she felt much more relaxed now than she had in the last month scooped up in Polis.

Anya halted in her movements when she noticed the horses shifting restlessly, neighing under their breath and their ears twitching nervously. She motioned Marie to do the same and the girl looked around with confused grey eyes, nothing seemed to be amiss.

The general let her brown eyes travel over the trees around them trying to spot what was spooking the horses. Horses had a better sense of danger than a human being could ever have and she trusted her own horse implicitly.

When she heard a low growl the hairs on her neck stood up and she heard a branch snap behind themselves.

She instantly pulled out her sword and when the growl resonated again, she knew without a doubt what they were facing. They called the beasts shadow cats, they had evolved from what once had been panthers. But these beasts were much larger and faster than a panther had been in the old world, they were hard to kill.

When Anya saw Marie also making a grab for her sword she shook her head vehemently. They would not be able to take on a shadow cat on their own. They were standing near enough to the horses to reach them quickly and a plan formed in her mind.

Anya pulled a dagger from her thigh and expertly threw it in the direction of their horses, efficiently severing Marie’s older horse. The mount immediately backed away from the tree and followed its instinct to flee.

The shadow cat seemed to contemplate for the blink of a second on who to follow before it launched behind the retreating horse.

“Quick!” Anya demanded from Marie abandoning their equipment all together. Shadow cats tented to hunt in pairs so it was reasonable that another one was lurking in the shadows around them.

Anya mounted the horse before Marie and hoisted the girl behind herself. When she kicked into her horse’s flanks her fears were confirmed as a second shadow cat followed them with a loud growl.

Anya felt the girl’s fingers holding on to her sides strongly as she tried to steer her horse through the trees as quickly as possible.

She knew that she had gotten a little distance between them and their predator when she located the opening to a small cave. Anya stopped the horse suddenly and put Marie down on her feet “Go into the cave. Hide there and do not come out before I get you” she quickly instructed fiercely and Marie nodded with a visibly worried expression.

The shadow cat was getting closer and Anya kicked her horse into a fast trot again “Hide!” she called over her shoulder one last time before her charge got out of view. She knew the shadow cat would be following her as they loved the hunt and getting the beast away from the girl was all that mattered at the moment.

 

Chapter 147

Marie watched Anya riding away with a sinking heart, her mind whirling frantically.

She could see the shadow of the huge beast following Anya on her horse and it sounded like the horse she had ridden before had lost its race in the distance. Goosebumps rose on her arms involuntarily. What if the first shadow cat would seek for her once it was finished with her horse. Marie tried not to think too hard on the horse which Anya had just sacrificed just like that, she had dubbed it “cupcake” in her head.

Anya had always told her that seeking shelter in a cave was not safe from a predator because a cave did not offer any additional exit path, so she disregarded her mentor’s initial orders and searched for a tree to climb instead. She found one where the last branches hung low enough that she could reach them with a slight jump.

Marie cautiously climbed on the tree glancing back down every few moments to look for signs that the first shadow cat had found her. She climbed as high as she dared and when she looked down her stomach gave an uncomfortable lurch; she had gone much higher than she thought and the ground looked to be so far away.

She sat down on the thick branch, where she had stopped, close to the tree trunk and kept her legs firmly secured around the branch, afraid of falling down and then she settled in to wait. Marie had no idea how long it might take Anya to get rid of the shadow cat and she could not shake the fear from her mind, that her mentor could fail and be gravely wounded, or worse killed, somewhere in the woods.

The minutes seemed to trickled by awfully slowly and her legs felt as if they started to cramp from the weird position she had on the tree branch. Marie carefully tried to loosen the clenching muscles in her legs and with a slight scream she felt her balance getting lost and the sensation of falling setting in. Suddenly she hit somewhere with her head and then everything was engulfed in blackness around herself.

 

Anya spurred her mare on to run as fast as possible, trying to bring it into territory where there might be more interesting prey for the shadow cat still following her closely. She was internally grateful to her horse’s endurance and when they crossed paths with a bear. The beast stopping in its tracks and growling loudly at her and her mount. Anya kept the reigns tightly in her hands and tried to keep her horse from giving into its instincts and flee.

She was lucky and the shadow cat that had followed them did not seem inclined to share its prey when another growl resonated behind them. Both predators staring at each other when the dark shadow cat sauntered out of the tree line into the clearing. When both predators finally launched at each other and their attention now solely between each other, Anya spurred her horse back into the direction they had come from, still keeping a fast tempo to bring as much distance between the predators and herself as possible. She clapped her mount onto its enormous flank in silent gratitude, bringing them now back towards her second. Anya internally hoped that the first shadow cat had given up its hunt after feeding on their second horse.

The general was wondering why a pair of shadow cats was this deeply into Trikru territory at all. The beasts normally lived way more south, but something must have shooed them from their grounds. She remembered that the Glowing Forest had had more sightings of mutated beasts as well and that brought the question what was now living south the lands of the coalition to force the beasts from their normal living places.

It took Anya some time to ride back to the place where she had left Marie. She dismounted her horse and left the mount at the entrance of the cave. Anya frowned, the ground looked completely undisturbed and no new footsteps were visible. Annoyance and worry took root in her mind instantly, where was Marie and why had she disobeyed her clear order?

She cursed herself a fool in her head for leaving the girl alone in the first place. But separating had been the only reasonable course of action. The girl would have only slowed her down and made it easier for the shadow cat to catch up with the horse, leading to both of them possibly dying.

“Marie!” Anya yelled for the girl leaving the cave and going back to the place where they had separated. The tracks on the ground were fortunately relatively easy to find and follow. She quickly found the girl’s trail and followed it. Marie’s steps lead Anya to a huge tree and the general furrowed her brow. She still called out to the girl every few moments again and waited for a reaction, but there was nothing. Only the wind which rustled a few leaves and her horse huffing still heated up from the race from the shadow cat.

Anya’s voice had turned more desperate as she yelled for Marie. Why was the girl not answering? Had the first shadow cat returned quicker than she had anticipated? But no tracks led to that conclusion. Anya circled the tree trunk and her heart fell into her stomach when she spotted a small pool of blood on a stone at its base. It was obvious Marie had hurt herself, probably after falling from the tree.

 

Marie’s POV

She blinked her eyes open carefully feeling a blinding pain shoot through her head and something sticky wet running down the side of her face. With shaking fingers, she touched the wet side of her face and when she inspected her fingers with morbid fascination, she recognized the red sticky substance for what it was, blood.

“Marie!” she heard a voice shouting in the distance, resonating painfully through her throbbing head. The girl got to her feet on shaky legs, having to steady herself against the rough tree bark. Her mind was sluggish and she stared into nothing for a moment, trying to remember where she was, or why she was here. All she could see where trees surrounding her and it took a moment for a voice to come back to her mind, someone had told her to hide, but she had no idea from what.

When she heard the name being called again by the voice of a female foreigner, she followed her instinct and retreated from the voice, which seemed to come closer. She had no idea how long she walked or where it was that she was going. She crossed a river, feeling water slip into her boots uncomfortably, but the cold of the water revived her for a little bit.

She stumbled a few times as she tried to get away and finally she fell again losing her footing. When she blinked her eyes open again, she found herself in a small creak, which could not possibly be visible from the ground. Her mind felt oddly heavy again and she gave into the tiredness, simply closing her eyes and slipping into oblivion.

Anya’s POV

Anya let out a shuddering breath when her fingers touched Marie’s blood. It was still mostly liquid and had just started to dry, so the girl could not have gotten very far yet. Flashes of Marie being hurt, stumbling through the woods occupied her mind, as the general straightened herself and took the reigns back into her hand. She would find Marie, she had to believe that.

Anya followed Marie’s tracks for some time with a frown. The girl must have moved pretty quickly, but why was she fleeing from her at all? She knew that a stream was located in the direction Marie’s tracks were leading her and Anya direly hoped that the girl had not crossed it. The foliage on the other side of the stream was thicker and it would be nearly impossible to find her charge’s tracks again.

She also kept her eyes and ears alert on the chance that one of the shadow cats had returned.

Her fears of Marie crossing the stream were confirmed when her charge’s tracks vanished just before the stream. Anya breathed a string of cusses when she mounted her horse again and led it through the stream, searching for Marie’s tracks on the other side. Her brown eyes searched frantically for some traces, but before she could find something Anya whipped around at the sound of something coming closer from the other side.

The general kicked her horse back into a fast trot even before she saw the shadow cat following her again. Anya direly hoped that her horse would be strong and fast enough to hold on for longer under the fast pace she had set.

 

Marie’s POV

When she opened her eyes again everything around her was blurry and as soon as she forced herself into a sitting position, the world around her begun to spin and she puked. The smell of vomit was almost acidic and she felt even sicker when the urge to puke relented for a few moments. She tried to get up from the ground and climb out of the creek. But no matter how hard she tried, she was unable to keep her balance against the strong spinning of the world around her. She kept on vomiting for some time and she wondered if there was even anything left to vomit. A thought settled into her sluggish mind, she needed water, she knew that dehydration was dangerous, but it seemed impossible to get out of the creek. She felt helpless, but the voice which had called the strange name was gone now. She had no idea who that voice belonged to, but the order to hide kept resonating in her mind and she could not remember from what, no matter how hard she tried. Her breathing and heart rate quickened when the realisation settled into her mind that she basically did not remember anything beside waking up at the base of the tree. She had now idea where she was, why she was there or even who she was. She barely felt it when she lost consciousness again.

 

Anya’s POV

Anya was nearly as exhausted as her mount when they somehow had managed to get rid of the shadow cat racing behind them. It was already starting to get dark and Anya just knew that there was not even the slightest chance she could push her horse to hurry back to the stream where she had lost Marie’s tracks. Anya only steered her horse back into a place which offered enough shelter to rest for a few hours. Everything in her screamed at her to just push past the exhaustion and continue her search for her charge, but she was sensible enough to recognize the impossibility at the moment.

To make matters worse it started to rain in the night. Anya would not admit out loud that there were tears running down her cheeks together with the rain drops, it was raining strongly and with every passing hour the chances of finding Marie’s tracks were declining dramatically. She was aware that they would be washed away in the morning, she would still try to find them again. Sleep evaded her for most of the night, but the general knew that her horse needed the rest as well so she stayed put and tried to fight off the hopelessness settling into her bones.

 

Lexa strode through her chambers in nervous anticipation. It was the third night now of Anya’s and Marie’s absence. She had been caught up in meetings during the first day making it utterly impossible to steal even a little moment together with Clarke. The commander had the suspicion that Titus had finally caught on to the fact that something was building between the two young leaders. The flamekeeper had kept her as occupied as possible although he did not broach the subject directly, probably knowing that he would overstep his boundaries if he did. Lexa had had a grand dinner prepared on the second night and waited nervously in her quarters only for a messenger to come to her some time later sending Clarke’s apologies that the healer had been called away to assist in a birth and it would probably take the whole night.

Lexa had cursed the spirits which seemed to have something against her finally having Clarke in total privacy but had resigned herself to the fact that there was nothing she could do. So, she had eaten on her own and turned in early. It felt oddly unfamiliar to have her quarters to herself again and Lexa was internally grateful that Risha still kept her company. The large rooms suddenly felt too big and too quiet to her, it was obvious she missed Marie and Anya, now that they had spent such a long time close to each other.

Alira had smiled graciously at her when she set the table in the commander’s quarters for two people again and Lexa had pointedly looked anywhere but at the other woman. The handmaid had been wise enough to keep her comments to herself and left in silence again. Lexa lighted the candles scattered around the room herself, basking her chambers in the soft flickering light of dozens of candles. She had learned to place them far enough away from anything which could catch fire easily the hard way.

Lexa waited anxiously, her stomach coiling uncomfortably and she chided herself a fool in her mind for even being nervous in the first place. There was no logical reason to feel this unsettled at the prospect of spending an evening and possibly a night with the blonde woman she loved. And yet her heart sped up even more when she finally heard Clarke’s loud footfalls in the hall, the healer had still not managed to start placing her feet in a more cautious manner, so it was always easy to identify her.

Lexa had discarded the attire of the commander, opting for soft dark shirt and tight dark trousers. She had scrubbed her face clean of the commander’s war paint and even taken off the commander’s icon of her forehead. Her brown hair hung in soft waves past her shoulders, brushed out carefully and her cheeks were rosy with the nervousness coursing through her veins. And her green eyes had regained the shine they had lost in the night Costia’s head had been delivered to her bed.

She stood only a slight distance away from the door and had clasped her hands behind her back, unsure of how to occupy them otherwise and she smiled slightly at Clarke when the woman rushed into the commander’s quarters.

Clarke remained routed to the spot for a moment, the apology for arriving late again dying on her lips at the sight Lexa presented now. The woman looked so utterly unlike the commander at this moment, replaced by a woman who was so obviously nervous and unsure that Clarke felt her own heart rate increase and an answering blush settle on her cheeks.

“Hello Clarke” Lexa finally said after a moment of heavily anticipation filled silence between them “I hope you are hungry”.

Clarke smiled back at the brunette woman with a slight nod and Lexa’s blush only seemed to deepen when Clarke looked around the room, noting what felt like hundreds of candles illuminating the chambers around them.

“I did not know, what you like, so I had a bit of everything be prepared” Lexa said motioning Clarke over to the set table “I can order for something else if there is nothing to your taste. Or we can skip dinner, if you are not hungry. I did not …” The commander nearly stumbled over her words in her haste.

“Lexa” Clarke interrupted her, softly putting a hand on the other woman’s elbow “It is alright. It looks perfect” she said honestly and sat down on the chair Lexa had pulled out.

Lexa took a deep breath and nodded, sitting down on her own chair “I am sorry. I do not know why I am this…” she stopped searching for words.

“Nervous?” Clarke asked with a slight tease in her blue eyes and Lexa nodded obviously reluctant to admit to what the commander must view as a form of weakness.

“So am I” Clarke added with an honest smile and Lexa seemed to emit a relieved breath.

The dinner went over a lot smoother than Lexa had feared. After the initial nervousness Lexa got Clarke to tell her something about her recent patients and the other woman instantly launched into an elaborate passionate speech. Lexa listened to her with a content smile, it was wonderful to her to see the way Clarke’s blue eyes now shone. It was obvious the healer was feeling better and Lexa hoped that she was at least partly the reason for that.

Clarke stopped talking abruptly when she noticed that she had been the one doing all the talking for what felt like an hour. They had even stopped eating already. But Lexa did not look offended in the slightest, it seemed that the other woman was genuinely interested in her work and content with just listening and nodding occasionally.

Lexa’s smile deepened when Clarke fell into silence and looked at her in an apologetic way. “I enjoy listening to you” she quickly reassured the blonde woman honestly. She could spend the whole night listen to Clarke’s melodic voice if that was all the healer was willing to do and she would be totally fine with it.

They stood from their chairs at the exact same moment and it was as if a magnetic force was pulling their bodies towards each other until they were standing across each other, barely any space left between them. Lexa could already feel Clarke exhale softly when she leaned down and their lips connected again. A feeling of contentment settled into her mind, nothing had ever felt this right than kissing Clarke at this moment, it felt like finally finding peace.

Lexa slowly and carefully placed her hands on Clarke’s hips, her movements slow giving the blonde every chance to signal that she was overstepping, but when nothing happened except Clarke coming even closer, Lexa deepened their kiss, their tongues enwinding passionately. Lexa moaned softly under her breath at the sensation when she felt Clarke’s fingers settling on her back.

The blonde felt like she had finally found her way home and she had never felt as safe on earth as she did encased in the commander’s soft embrace. She let her fingers trail over the hem of Lexa’s dark shirt before she pushed it up slightly, running her fingertips over the revealed skin. She had already felt and seen the commander just in her chest bindings but she was curious over every little scar she could feel on the young woman’s body.

Lexa took a little step back when she felt Clarke’s fingers treating under her shirt, but instead of retreating, she simply took off the shirt altogether and in a bout of boldness she unwound her bindings as well, leaving her upper body bare to Clarke’s probing gaze.

Clarke bit her lip almost hungrily at the sight. Lexa was lean and muscular and, in her eyes, absolute perfection. She looked like an artist of the old world could have sculpted her from stone to resemble a goddess. With what she hoped to be a flirting smile, Clarke took off her own shirt and chest binding, she had stopped wearing a bra when she found that the bindings were so much more comfortable, and waited for Lexa to react.

The commander’s pupils visibly dilated in obvious arousal at the sight, but her hands still hovered between them waiting for permission to touch the blonde woman. Clarke took her outstretched hands and gently pulled at them in the direction of the bed. She had no intention of stopping now and she could already feel arousal gathering between her legs.

Lexa willingly followed the blonde’s lead and when the back of Clarke’s knees finally hit her bed, the blonde laid down with a seductive smile. Lexa entwined the fingers of one of her hands with Clarke’s and straddled the blonde’s hips, while she caressed Clarke’s jawline with the other hand, trailing her fingertips down her neck and over her breastbone and finally between the valley of her breasts, letting them stop at her trousers.

Clarke squeezed the commander’s hand in silent permission. She smiled up at the woman who hovered above her with such wonder on her face that this was finally happening.

 

 

 

 

Chapter 148

Lexa did not know if she should consider herself incredibly blessed or cursed by the spirits to be granted not just one love but a second chance at love and true happiness in her life time.

Her fingers trembled as she opened Clarke’s trousers fumbling with the button clumsily. She felt her heart beating even stronger as she stood back from the bed, sliding the trousers from Clarke’s legs. She leaned over the other woman kissing every inch of newly revealed skin gently and leaving a trail of hot open-mouthed kisses down the blonde’s legs.

Clarke trembled under the gentle administration and she was torn between simply waiting and growling at the other woman to stop teasing her in such an exquisite way. She watched in absolute awe how the commander kneeled between her legs at the foot of the huge bed and unlaced her boots, before carefully sliding them from her feet. She let out a strangled mixture of a moan and a laugh as Lexa kissed the arch of her feet and her breathing stopped for a moment when her green eyes, almost blackened now out of pure desire, connected with her blue ones.

There was such an amount of pure love and adoration in Lexa’s gaze that it stole Clarke’s breath and she wished for the chance to see herself from the other leader’s gaze. She gently trailed her fingers over Lexa’s prominent cheek bones and when it looked like the commander’s green eyes seemed to fill with tears, Clarke pulled her back up on the bed, meeting her for an almost feverish kiss, hoping her lips and touches could express where words failed her at the moment.

Suddenly the barrier between them left by her underwear and Lexa’s trousers were too much and she tugged at Lexa with an indignant whining sound.

Lexa cursed herself in her mind for wearing skin tight leather trousers. She had to get off the bed again to slid them from her legs and she was surprised to see Clarke getting up again. Their positions were almost reversed now. Clarke kneeled down at Lexa’s feet and helped her with sliding down the tight trousers, taking off the commander’s underwear as well.

She could hear the brunette inhaling a large gulp of air when Clarke hooked her fingers in the hem of her underwear and slid them down her incredibly long and toned legs. The other woman seemed to consist mostly of lean muscular flesh and still she had a femininity about her that almost clashed with the rest of her.

Just as Lexa had done for Clarke, the blonde woman now left kisses down the commander’s long legs. Lexa had to sit down on the edge of the bed and angle her feet for the trousers to finally come off completely. She pulled at Clarke’s hands making her stand up in front of her.

Their eyes connected for a moment as Lexa’s fingers fumbled around the edge of Clarke’s underwear and the blonde gave a subtle nod of permission.

She was surprised by how gentle and considerate Lexa seemed to be. Somehow Clarke had expected her to be rough and passionate, but she had not considered how incredibly unselfish the woman beneath the armour was. If she backed out now, Clarke doubted that Lexa would hold that against her. The commander was probably prepared to wait a lifetime if necessary. 

Clarke stepped out of her underwear once Lexa had slid them down her legs and the commander left a kiss on the subtle curve of her stomach afterwards, pulling a giggle from Clarke’s lips.

Clarke did not possess any real experience when it came to sharing her body with another female. She had kissed a girl before on the Ark but they had both been only fourteen and her father had burst into the room when they had started feeling each other below their shirts and she had been so embarrassed that she had been reluctant to repeat the safe experience of being caught by one of her parents.

After landing on earth there had only been Finn and they had hurried things too much. She had thought to love the shaggy haired boy, but she knew better now. What she had felt for Finn did not deserve to be labelled as love though, it had been hormonal driven attraction. She had fallen for his flirtation like a naïve teenage girl.

It was not comparable to what she now felt for Lexa. She just knew that what she felt for the other leader was the kind of encompassing love that you only found once in your life. Clarke hoped that she would one day find the words to express what she was feeling.

She stood in front of Lexa, no barriers left between them, but Clarke did not feel the need to cover herself. Lexa’s gaze was tender and appreciative as it roamed over her body.

Where Lexa was tan, lean and muscular; Clarke was pale, softer and curvier.

Lexa’s tan skin was marked from the hardship that had been her life and training on the ground. Beside the tattoos on her arm and back, many scars littered her body. Some were barely visible anymore, having faded with time, while others still stood out starkly as white lines against her tan skin, where deeper wounds had nearly cost her life in the past.

Clarke carefully climbed into the commander’s lap, straddling her thighs and she placed a kiss on the fresh scar left behind by the arrow. The wound which had forced her to face her lingering feelings for the commander. She would ask after the other scars one day, curious to know which story they told, but now was not the time.

Lexa let out a breathy moan as Clarke leaned up and their breasts touched while their lips reconnected.

Almost reverently the commander trailed her fingers down the blonde’s back, until she gripped onto her backside, kneading the soft flesh beneath her fingers.

Clarke moaned loudly at the sensation and arched her back sensually. She shuddered strongly when she felt her wet centre rub against Lexa’s defined abs in the process. Her breathing turned to short gasps as Lexa encouraged her to repeat the motion. Lexa leaned down her head until she trailed kisses from the blonde’s jaw down to her breast, taking an already erect nipple between her teeth. She bit down nipple and when Clarke whined at the sharp sensation of pain, Lexa soothed it almost apologetic with her tongue. 

Her moans got louder, but the friction was not enough and she did not wish to finish before they had really started.

Clarke tried to back off a little and turn her attention to Lexa’s body, but the commander obviously had other plans. In one unexpected motion she had flipped both of them and now laid above Clarke one thigh wedged between the blonde’s legs. Clarke shamelessly rubbed herself against Lexa’s strong thigh and whined low in her throat when she pulled back, sucking and licking down her throat.

Clarke felt like Lexa was worshipping her body, kissing and nipping at everything she could find on her trail down her body. She bunched the furs in her hands, clawing at them fervently, when Lexa finally reached her destination.

Clarke nodded several times in compliance when Lexa paused again, before finally putting her mouth against her already wet centre. The blonde shuddered at the feeling and she felt herself nearing her peak way too quickly under Lexa’s administration.

She was utterly helpless against the onslaught of sensation. Clarke tried to hold on for as long as possible, but her body had other plans and with a loud guttural moan, she came. Clarke felt Lexa kiss back up her body gently and settle herself beside her on the bed, drawing lazy circles on her stomach, while Clarke tried to gather herself.

The commander’s green eyes seemed to twinkle when Clarke regained her breath after reaching climax and her fingers were gentle and soft, a loving expression on her features.

Clarke was nervous to reciprocate, she had never done this and she did not wish to make it wrong somehow. But Lexa seemed to sense her hesitation, whispering to her that it was alright if she did not wish to do it.

Clarke shook her head with a slight blush trying to explain that she was simply inexperienced. A new facet of wonder and admiration seemed to take residence within Lexa’s green eyes, when she understood the meaning behind Clarke’s mumbling.

Clarke was unsure if she wanted to reciprocate with her mouth, just as Lexa had done, but the commander took the choice from her by gently coaxing her fingers to the brunettes centre and demonstrating on how to stroke her.

It was obvious quickly that Lexa was not as vocal during sex as Clarke was. A sliver of restraint seemed to cling to the brunette even in the throes of passion. But Clarke was determined to make her lose her restraint some time. She still could take her cues from the quickening of Lexa’s breathing, from the soft moans she emitted and from the way her muscles rippled under her skin.

As she had expected Lexa came almost silently, the complete relaxation of her muscles the only indignation of her climax.

Clarke softly nibbled at her neck, up her jaw, convinced that leaving a hickey on the commander’s skin was an utterly stupid idea, although she did feel the sudden urge to mark the other woman as her own in some way.

Lexa looked totally relaxed and content and Clarke thought she had never seen her like this before.

“I love you” the commander breathed against Clarke’s lips, feeling sleep already pull at the edges of her consciousness.

Clarke did not know exactly what the words meant but she thought to know the meaning. The smile radiating from the commander’s youthful face when she repeated the words in English was almost blinding in its intensity.

When she laid her head on Lexa’s chest, listening to her strong heartbeat, their limps entangled and sweat still drying on their skin, Clarke knew that Marie had been right all those weeks ago. Home was not a place, it was a person and she had found her home in Lexa.

 

The night passed awfully slowly for Anya and she only waited for so long as she thought absolutely necessary for her horse to rest a bit, she was not sure if she had slept at all during the night. Every fibre of her being screamed at her to search for Marie instantly. She knew that the girl was wounded and she had left her on her own in unfamiliar surroundings and basically defenceless.

The general just took some dried strips of meat from the food she had packed for them and urged her horse back into a trot, eating on the go and not waiting even a moment longer. Anya still kept alert for predators who might have found them again.

She impatiently urged the horse on. They could not travel as fast as Anya would have wished for, but the rain continued during the whole night and it was still raining. It had turned to ground slippery and difficult for the horse to navigate. But she knew that it would take her even longer without her horse so she needed to be careful before the horse slipped and broke a leg.

Her mood was as bleak as the sky, hung with dark clouds and although Anya tried to stay positive that she would find Marie quickly but she could not shake the dark foreboding from her mind that filled her thoughts.

She did not wish to think about the possibility that she would fail in locating their charge and yet she envisioned exactly that. How could a simple hunting excursion turn into such a disaster?

Anya now regretted not having taken Lexa’s offer to have other warriors accompany them. If she had not been alone with Marie, there would have been no reason to separate at all, but she knew that letting her thoughts wonder like that was of no help.

When she reached the region where she had lost Marie’s tracks the previous evening, the general started calling out to her charge.

Anya quickly found herself losing the hope she had had to find Marie easily, when the woods around her remained stubbornly silent.

Anya searched through the woods around the stream looking frantically for any signs of Marie, but she found nothing. She felt like screaming out of frustration. She had wondered the whole night where their charge was and she could not ban the picture from her mind of Marie sitting somewhere, bleeding and crying herself to sleep.

Anya searched for several hours until she had to admit defeat. She did emit a frustrated growl, when Anya made her horse turn around sharply and urged it back into a faster pace.

She barely felt it when the rain started to get through her coat, wetting her to the bone. The horse huffed in obvious effort to keep the pace the general demanded.

They had covered the distance together in three days and Anya was eternally grateful that she had taken it easy on Marie. The girl was not used to riding large distances so Anya had stopped often and they had ridden at a slow to moderate speed, allowing Marie to get used to riding again. Anya judged that she could reach Polis at nightfall if she pushed her horse to its limits, but she was not sure if it would hold on long enough.

The weather stayed against Anya, the rain got even heavier as the hours passed. Still Anya kept on pressing her horse to continue and when finally, the outline of Polis appeared on the horizon she breathed out in relieve. The horse seemed to use its last strength reserves and galloped towards the capitol quicker again.

Anya handed the reigns of her horse over to the second working at the stables and snapped at him to prepare another horse at once, together with others mounts. She had only wanted to quickly return to the capitol, gather other warriors to help her search for Marie and leave again as fast as possible.

She strode over to the tower with fast long strides and the citizens still going about their daily business evaded her like the plague, making space in her path immediately.

Anya sent a messenger up to notify Lexa of her arrival and she hurried to the level where most of the warriors were housed of the commander’s private unit who she had trained. She knew that the commander would not deny her if she wished to take all of them to help her locate Marie.

She snapped orders at the first warriors she could find, instructing them to pack supplies within an hour and left again in a whirl in the direction of the commander’s quarters. She could dress in dry clothes before they left again.

When Anya stormed into the commander’s quarters Lexa was in the process of dressing herself again. The general spotted Clarke behind her previous second and knew instantly what she had interrupted here.

Something in her expression made Lexa pause and Anya knew that the messenger had not been granted entry yet.

“Where is Marie?” the commander asked with a furrowed brow when Anya simply strode passed them, discarding her wet clothes carelessly on the floor.

Risha whined at the general, sniffing her human on her but seeing no sign of the girl.

“I do not know” Anya admitted through clenched teeth and quickly took dry clothes from a chest and redressed.

“What?!” Lexa retorted.

“What does that mean that you do not know?” Clarke asked with a frown.

Anya whirled around and her brown eyes were blazing angrily. She did not know why, but it incensed her to find Lexa obviously romantically occupied, while she had spent the last hours worrying about the fate of their charge, although she knew that it was not fair on the younger woman.

“We have encountered a pair of shadow cats and I left her at a place to hide and get rid of them” Anya retold quickly “When I returned later, she was gone. She must have climbed a tree and fallen down, there was blood. But I could not find her the next morning either. The shadow cats are still lurking around, so I need reinforcement.”

Lexa had paled considerably at her mentor’s words. That meant that Marie had spent the previous night on her own who knows where in the woods and might possibly be bleeding to death somewhere at this very moment. “Take with you whoever you wish” she immediately said.

Anya nodded curtly. Before she could leave, Lexa stopped her with a worried hand on her elbow. The commander’s voice wavered as she almost pleaded “Bring her back”.

Anya nodded again, her eyes flashing momentarily before she turned hurriedly and left again in a whirl.

The group who waited for the general consisted of twenty warriors and Anya sharply instructed them on what she had encountered and where she had seen Marie last and where she had lost her tracks.

The ride to the place passed quickly and in silence. They had been given faster horses which were usually reserved for urgent messengers and Anya had urged them through the night, not caring about the darkness in the slightest. Once they had reached the terrain where she suspected Marie could be, they separated and fanned out.

 

When she woke the next time the pounding in her head had receded a little bit, but she was still woozy when she tried to get to her feet. It seemed to take her a long time to climb out of the creek again. She wondered how long she had been unconscious. It had rained during the time and the ground had turned slippery making it even harder to stay upright. She felt immensely thirsty, her lips felt as if they had already broken open due to dryness and she distinctly remembered walking through water on the way to the creek. Unsurely of the direction she tried to find her way back to the stream.

She kept on glancing up to the sun trying to estimate how much time had passed and she had the suspicion that she kept on moving in the wrong direction altogether.

What felt like hours later, she felt her strength leaving her body with every step, she could barely remain upright anymore. Her mind was sluggish and when she suddenly heard the sounds of hooves on the ground, she was too slow to search for a place to hide. She cowered behind a tree hoping that whoever was coming had not seen her, but she was unlucky.

She did not know who it was she was facing. She did not recognize the woman. The woman had brown hair with blonde streak which was braided and dark brown eyes and she instinctively tried to inch away from the stranger.

So, I found you” the woman drawled in an almost bored tone.

She narrowed her eyes at the woman “You know me?” her voice sounded unsure even to her own ears.

She saw the other woman frown at her answer and something flashed through her eyes, something she could not identify quickly enough.

I do” the woman said, urgency now in her tone “I came to bring you back” the woman’s voice was softer now and she indecisively took the offered hand and let herself be led to a horse and hoisted up onto the huge mount. She did not recognize the landscape as the woman sped the horse up suddenly.

 

 

Chapter 149

Lexa looked behind Anya’s retreating form with worry clouding her expression.

Clarke had stayed back and watched the commander and general exchange a few quick words. She hoped that they would succeed in finding the girl quickly, she knew how much the girl meant to her mentors, losing her would be devasting to both of them. The realist in her could not stop her mind from calculating how long the girl had been on her own now and which injuries she might have sustained while falling from a tree. A human body could only survive so long without water, so she hoped the girl would be found before she died of dehydration, which did not consider the possibility of a predator finding the wounded child.

She waited until the general had stormed out of the room again, before she stepped closer to Lexa and placed her hands on the other woman’s back in silent reassurance.

Lexa’s green eyes shone with desperation when they connected with Clarke blue ones and her voice had a strange tone to it “What if they cannot find her?”

Clarke immediately shook her head “Do not think that. They will find her” she promised with a conviction she did not feel.

The ghost of a smile played around Lexa’s lips for a moment before her features turned serene again.

“Come” Clarke ordered and motioned to the bed. It would not help if Lexa stayed up worrying, possibly for days and exhausted herself senselessly in the process. Clarke would stay with her and try to keep her calm, she hoped that her presence would help divert the other woman’s attention.

Lexa was thankful for Clarke’s obvious attempt to reassure her of something that both could not promise, internally she prayed to the spirits to guide Marie safely back to them.

 

They had agreed to meet back at the tree where Anya had spotted what she assumed to be blood from Marie a few hours later, way past midday. They had also agreed to try to signal if one of them had been successful in location Marie and Anya felt her stomach coil tightly when they all turned up empty handed.

“Where is Echo?” she almost snarled at the warrior who had been supposed to build a pair with the Azgeda assassin.

The young man averted his gaze for a second and then mumbled “She claimed to be more efficient on her own. I can point in which direction she left”

Anya clenched her jaw together forcefully. If the assassin would not return soon, it meant she had left. She wondered why the assassin would chose to leave now, she had always questioned her loyalty to the commander, but the timing seemed off. Could she have found Marie? It felt as though the blood within her veins turned to ice at the thought and she forcefully had to shake the image from her mind of Nia sending another present to Lexa, a present in the form of Marie’s head.

Fortunately for the young warrior, he was able to find the path Echo had taken and Anya quickly followed it.

It took her some time to find what she had desperately hoped no to find. The woman had obviously gotten from her horse and stumbled upon Marie by chance. The girl’s tracks were easy to find and clumsy, as if she had barely been able to walk any more. Their tracks led back to where the horse must have waited and the Azgeda assassin had steered the horse in the opposite direction of Polis and instead towards the border to Ice Nation land.

Anya felt her body momentarily lose its strength and she fell to her knees, eyes closed tightly and lips pressed together in a harsh line, reigning in the scream she wanted to emit. She had no idea of knowing how long ago Echo had met Marie and how much of a headstart the assassin already had. The lands of Azgeda would still be mostly covered in snow and ice, giving the Ice Nation woman a clear advantage and she also would now the terrain way better, making it nearly impossible to catch up to her. Anya did not even the slightest idea where the Ice queen might be at the moment and that would be exactly where the other woman was heeded.

“Should we follow them?” the young warrior’s voice was almost tentative as he asked after a moment of silence.

Anya straightened herself, her features morphed into an expressionless mask and she shook her head “We will return to Polis” although it pained her deeply not to hunt down the assassin, she knew that she would be leading the other warriors into a certain death. They were not prepared for a long trip and definitely not one into the snow. They would never manage to find her, she had to face the harsh reality, that Marie was gone. The girl might not be dead yet, but she would be as soon as Echo reached queen Nia.

None of the warriors dared to say anything as she made them mount their horses again and urged them back into the city quickly. Anya would need to relay the message of what had happened to the commander. Lexa could send a messenger to queen Nia, demanding to get her second back and if she refused, Lexa would finally have enough reason to denounce Ice Nation from the coalition and declare war on them.

 

Lexa had spent both nights together with Clarke, getting very little sleep. She had tried to listen to every sound in the hall, hoping against all sense that Anya had already found Marie. Her mornings and day had been filled with meetings and in the afternoon, she had scheduled to train with the older nightbloods, while Clarke taught the younger ones a little bit of drawing. The children had heard that Marie was missing and they were all worried as well, so Lexa had readily agreed to Clarke’s offer to occupy them for a little bit.

She had paired off Aden and Ontari and was watching them fight against each other with staffs, throwing in a little criticism when it was warranted.

When she saw the group of warriors around Anya return her eyes frantically searched for Marie. When she did not spot the girl together with Anya, Lexa looked at the other riders, but none of them had a child with them. Anya’s expression was already enough to tell her, that they had indeed not found Marie.

Aden and Ontari had stopped fighting each other, when the commander had turned from their group. The blonde boy knew instantly what it meant that Marie was not with the general and he watched the dark haired nightblood instead. He could see the shock and honest sadness settle into her dark eyes before she became aware of being watched and glowered at him angrily.

“What happened to Marie, commander?” Aden cautiously asked. Because Marie was officially the first to the commander, the other girl’s fate was a matter to all of them.

“Echo has found her before I did” it was Anya who answered and the anger was clear in her steely tone. Lexa had gone pale and her eyes seemed unfocused.

Ontari’s head had instantly snapped to the general, disbelief marring her features.

“Her trail leads to Azgeda” Anya added heavily.

Ontari inhaled sharply, her mind whirling frantically. She did not wish to believe that the kind young girl could already be dead, but she did know that there was no way of predicting what Nia would do to her. If no clear sign of her death at the hand of the Ice queen would reach the capitol in the next weeks, Nia would have found a possible use in the young girl. Ontari had seen that happen already. Nia had imprisoned young warriors and after breaking their will had kept them, they were mostly the most loyal assassins later.

Anya stormed from the training grounds without waiting for any orders from the commander. She could not face her former second now, nor could she stand the presence of the nightbloods, looking at her with sad eyes.

She had no idea where she wanted to go at all. She did not wish to go into the commander’s quarters either, where she knew, Marie’s things would still be scattered around as if she just would return any moment. Anya stalked through the streets for a long time, until her feet carried her out of Polis and into the bordering woods. She felt her legs give out under herself and she almost fell to the ground, when hot tears fell down her cheeks.

Lexa ended the training by simply turning towards the tower and leaving the nightbloods, she felt numb, her mind had seemed to cease functioning and she felt that she needed to return to her quarters instantly or she would crumble in front of people who were never supposed to see the commander waver.

Lexa did not look at anyone of the guards as she strode through the tower and into her quarters, she felt Gustus’ presence linger at the door and she snapped at him to go.

As soon as the door fell closed behind him, Lexa stepped over to the table and her eyes filled with tears when she spotted the last drawings Marie had made with Clarke, while she had been forced to stay in bed with her wound. Her throat constricted painfully as she felt tears fall from her eyes unbidden.

She tried to busy herself with sorting through the things still scattered around the room that so obviously had belonged to Marie.

Lexa put a few things on the side to put them into a box she kept under her bed later, after she could discuss with Anya what the other woman might wish to keep for herself. The box contained little trinkets from her past, such as a necklace she had gifted to Costia.

She was still crying soundlessly when Clarke stormed into her quarters an unknown time later. The blonde stopped in her tracks for a moment “I am so, so sorry, Lexa” the healer emphasised honestly, voice filled with compassion.

Lexa stiffened for a moment in Clarke’s embrace, before even the last shreds of restraint crumbled within her and she answered the hug, almost clinging to the other woman, sobs shaking her whole body in deep grief.

It seemed to take Risha some time before the wolf understood why the commander was grieving and that it was linked to her human. The wolf suddenly started to howl loudly, as if to express and share the woman’s grief.

Lexa stepped back from Clarke slightly and Clarke thought to have never seen the woman so small and helpless, it looked as if she would fall under the weight of the commander’s regalia she was still wearing. Lexa crouched down slightly next to Risha and enveloped the wolf, silencing her howling to a whimpering sound, that seemed to resonate painfully within Lexa’s very heart and soul.

Alira brought something to eat some time later and by the redness of the woman’s eyes, it was obvious that she had already heard that Marie would not be returning.

Clarke did not voice her tentative thought that the girl was not yet dead and she knew the chances for her survival were rather slim. Queen Nia had already killed Lexa’s first love, she knew that, and killing the child she had apparently taken as a second and loved more like an own child, would only hurt and wound Lexa deeper, something the Ice Queen would surely wish for.

Clarke had tried a few times to talk with Lexa, but the commander seemed to be miles away and it was impossible to reach her right now. So, Clarke simply stayed close and when she spotted the drawings and the art supplies on the table, she picked up an empty sheet of paper and started sketching Marie.

When Lexa’s eyes seemed to regain some focus, Marie’s features were already recognizable on the piece of paper and the commander took a deep breath to try to stop herself before she continued to cry. She knew how very quickly a memory of someone you loved deeply would fade, so she was thankful for Clarke that she was already fabricating something to remember her by.

Although every bite she took seemed to turn to dust in her mouth, Lexa forced herself to eat something from the food Alira had delivered previously. She was still and would remain the commander to her last breath and she could not abandon her duty by weakening herself. She could allow herself the time to grieve in the hours of the night within the privacy of her quarters, but tomorrow morning she would need to sit through the next meeting and once again separate herself from her heart, blinding out the pain which seemed to rip her apart at the moment.

Clarke stopped in her sketching and smiled slightly at the brunette when she noticed that she had started to eat.

“I will not slack in my duty” Lexa commented, voice still sounding slightly hollow.

“I did not think you would” Clarke assured quickly, although she wished that she could convince Lexa that it was alright for her to mourn for the girl. She knew that the commander would not let anyone see her grieve outside of her chambers and that she could not as well without being regarded as weak, which could ultimately cost her life.

Risha sat at the commander’s feet, her muzzle lying on Lexa’s legs, while the wolf still whined softly Lexa occasionally stroked over her head.

Anya returned to exactly that scene. Her tears had run dry in the woods and her mind was filled with an almost crazed wish for revenge. She was regretting not following Echo instantly now. Although she could see clearly that Lexa had been crying as well, the sight of Clarke sketching Marie and Risha cuddling with the other woman, irked her the wrong way in the moment.

Anger suddenly boiled in her veins hotly. “I will take a few warriors into Ice Nation” she proclaimed through clenched teeth.

Lexa looked up at the general sharply and immediately shook her head “You will not. That would be declaring war”. Her voice was hard, although her green eyes still clearly showed her sadness.

“You would have me do nothing?! I can follow her now and…” Anya raised her voice, eyes blazing.

Lexa stood from her chair to make up for some of the height difference and her composure turned back into that of the commander “I repeat, you will not! You will stay within Polis and serve as my general”.

Anya gaped at her for a moment and Lexa already feared that the older woman would be too upset to think sensible now, when the general seemed to deflate “I need to do something” her voice had turned desperate and almost pleadingly “I left her alone…”

Lexa shortly looked at Clarke and the blonde understood that the other needed to have this conversation in private, so she quickly gathered her things, squeezed Lexa’s hands shortly and left.

“You are not to blame…” Lexa started in a soft tone once Clarke had left.

Anya, who had looked down at the floor, looked up again, eyes blazing angrily “But I am!” she yelled “I left her. I left her alone. I separated from her! I have sworn to protect her and I simply left her …”

“I do not blame you, Anya” Lexa tried to convince the older woman.

“But you should” Anya retorted darkly “And you will, one day” her voice sounded resigned.

Lexa shook her head in the negative “You have not killed her, Anya. You have tried to protect her” her voice was wavering slightly as well. She did not know, if she would have made a different decision in Anya’s place, but she had learned her hunting and survival skill from the general, so it was doubtful she would have decided in a different way. But she knew that it would never be fair of her to hold it against the older woman. They both needed to hold onto the fact that it would be Nia who would ultimately kill Marie. Both of them were not at fault at the girl’s death.

“And I have failed her…” Anya said feebly.

Lexa noted on the exhaustion deeply edged into the older woman’s features “Marie’s death is not your fault, Anya, nor will it ever be. And you need to rest, it does not do for you to waste away”.

Anya seemed to wish to protest, but Risha who had stepped up to her and nudged her leg silenced her. Lexa could see her brown eyes filling up with tears, but Anya rigorously blinked them away before they could fall and she nodded.

Lexa stopped the general when she realized that Anya intended to leave her quarters and simply said that she should rest here this night. She did not wish for her to be alone tonight, although she would not have said so aloud. Anya vehemently shook her head “I will return to my quarters” she insisted.

Lexa stopped her again pointing to the things she had already sorted through “These are all Marie’s things. I thought you would like to keep something…”

But Anya did not let her finish her offer “Burn it, for all I care” the general shot back in a cold tone and when Risha nudged her leg again, she stepped back with murderously glinting eyes “Keep the wolf, or I will kill it in the morning”.

Lexa was left in her quarters, her mouth hanging open in slight shock at the older woman’s outburst and she felt tears gather in her eyes again.

She knew that every person grieved in a different way, but it was obvious that Anya had already chosen to focus on her anger and that would turn her into a short tempered and maybe even dangerous general.

When she heard loud crashing sounds from the halls a few moments later and looked out of the doors to see the origin, Anya was hurling everything out of her own door which had belonged to Marie, including her smaller bed.

“Help her” the commander demanded from her guards, wanting to end Anya’s self-imposed torture as quickly as possible.

She also sent for her fastest messenger. Lexa had written a demand to the queen to be handed back her second unharmed. She would tell the ambassadors of her order and ultimatum against the queen within the next meeting. Should the queen kill Marie, Azgeda would be expelled from the coalition once and for all. Lexa did not truly believe that Nia would simply send back Marie, if the messenger even reached the queen before the girl was killed. But it would at least give her claim enough to declare war against Azgeda.

While she found solace in Clarke’s arms in the night, Risha rolled together at the end of the bed, Anya remained on her own. Gustus had tried to approach her, but he retreated in defeat only moments later.

 

 

Chapter 150

The woman urged the horse into an immense tempo and the world seemed to be flying by quickly.

She tried to hold onto the horse as strong as possible but the pace made her feel sick again after some time. Somehow riding with this woman did feel off, she could not pinpoint what felt wrong, but somehow, she was just aware that something was horribly wrong.

When the woman finally pulled the horse to a step, she nearly fell down the horse. The woman kept her from falling completely and she immediately dry heaved from dizziness. There was simply nothing left in her body to vomit out anymore.

She asked for the woman’s name in a tentative voice and the answer was a sharp “Echo”. She had no idea if she had truly ever heard the name before. But she did not even remember her own name anymore, so who knew? The woman took off a shawl and wrapped it around her head, saying that her hair needed to be hidden from view.

They had reached a terrain where snow was still covering the ground and the longer they travelled, the deeper the snow got.

The woman had halted their ride in what seemed to be a small village. But it only consisted of around five huts and she impatiently demanded that her horse be exchanged for a rested one. It was obvious quickly that the villagers were poor. They seemed dressed in multiple layers off rags to fend off the cold and still it was obvious that they were all thin from starvation.

She internally doubted that these people even had a horse but to her great surprise the woman was led to another hut, where two horses had been housed. In comparison to the people, the horses seemed to be well cared for and the man who led the woman to the horse bid her to relay to their queen that they had done their duty.

The woman took one of the horses without another word and hoisted her up in front of her. She had hoped that they would rest for a bit. She still felt thirsty, hungry and dizzy. But the woman did not speak another word to her, as she urged the new horse into a fast pace.

She had the foreboding that asking the woman for a break, water and some food would not go over well, so she tried to keep upright in the saddle and held on to consciousness for as long as her exhausted body allowed.

She must have fallen asleep for some time and when she woke again, her mind felt awfully slow and sluggish. Her face tingled uncomfortably from the cold and when her eyes finally cleared she could see snowflakes falling around them. It felt as though her eyes were watering and the tears seemed to freeze on her cheeks. She tried to keep still, but the woman had obviously realized that she was woken up.

“We will be there soon enough” the woman said in a sharp tone.

 

She still frantically tried to remember who she was, but she could not even remember her own name. So, when they finally stopped again, seemingly in the middle of nowhere, she asked the woman what her name was.

She did not like the glance in her brown eyes when the woman answered that her name would be “Marie” and she noted on the pause before she answered.

She had hoped that her name would cause something in her mind to react, but she had no idea if it was even her name at all or not. But what reason could this woman have for telling her a wrong name, so she assumed to truly be named Marie.

When the woman motioned her to came closer to the horse again to re-mount, Marie stopped and finally asked after at least something to drink.

Echo narrowed her eyes at the girl. In truth the child looked sickly already and she started to fear that she could die on the way to queen Nia’s camp, so Echo finally gave the girl some of her water.

Marie barely had time to take more than a couple of small sips before Echo took the flask from her again and simply hoisted her back onto the horse. She tried to bit back a groan, her legs felt as if they were developing sores from all the hours spend in a saddle.

She had absolutely no way of telling for how long they continued their quick ride after this short stop. It seemed as if the horse’s huffs had started to get scarce and Marie feared that it would simply drop dead.

When they finally stopped again Marie saw what looked like a fortress looming above them. But it was hard to tell as it had started to get dark again.

A warrior blocked their entrance and wanted to know in a sneer what Echo wanted.

Echo quickly said that she had a present for the queen and shiver ran down Marie’s frame at the tone of her voice. The man’s eyes widened slightly and they were granted entrance.

The woman pulled her along at the scruff of her coat and Marie tried to keep up without stumbling. She quickly lost all sense of orientation as the fortress was obviously much grander than it seemed from the outside. It was as cold within the walls as outside and there were barely any sources of light. But Echo seemed to be familiar with the turns and twists of the halls and pulled her along unrelentingly with fast strides.

Marie was so preoccupied with keeping her footing that she did only catch a short glance of the older woman who was sitting on what she could only describe as a throne, when Echo already forcefully pushed her to her knees.

“Echo” the other woman drawled in a tone which made the hairs at the back of Marie’s neck stand up.

“My queen” Echo immediately answered, bowing down deeply herself. She did not wait to let Nia get angry at her long absence and pushed Marie down totally, exposing the girl’s tattooed neck in the process “A present for you, my queen”.

Echo watched her queen’s features morph from clear disdain to obvious satisfaction in the blink of an eye when she recognized who the blonde girl was exactly.

“She has lost her memory” Echo quickly explained before the queen could say anything and a calculating cold glimmer appeared in her light brown eyes.

“Escort our guest to a room” Nia ordered instantly. Her mind was whirling with the possibilities the little girl could offer her.

One of the warriors standing around the room pulled the girl up from the floor, it was obvious she was weakened and exhausted, her grey eyes clouded and unfocused.

“Have you been followed?” she questioned the assassin. The woman had been part of the royal guard for years, but Nia urged to know what had kept her from returning for such a long time.

Echo shook her head “Anya will not have dared to follow. And even if she did, she would not have found my tracks quick enough”.

“And where have you been, Echo?” the queen asked, her voice a mixture of cold calmness and barely restrained impatience.

Echo visibly had to swallow under her queen’s intense stare. She kept her voice strong and unwavering as she retold how she had been overpowered by reapers and brought into the Mountain.

It was obvious that the queen was not satisfied with her explanation as to why she had afterwards stayed within the capitol for so many weeks. But she direly hoped that bringing the commander’s second to Nia would help propitiate her.

The queen dismissed her with the offer of a room, but Echo knew better than to decline. The offer was nothing more than a nicely formulated demand and she would certainly not be allowed to leave the queen’s castle before Nia had made up her mind.

Marie did not fight against the strong hands shoving her through the halls and she was internally grateful that the room into which she was brought was at least reasonably warm. She was even given something to drink and eat, she did not question the gifts and simply ate and drunk, before she gave into her exhaustion and fell asleep on the bed in the corner of the room.

She was roused from the bed again, when it felt that she had barely fallen asleep. Her sleep had been disturbed time and time again by images flashing up in her mind. Distorted images and voices, but she could neither see clearly, nor hear the voices, as if she was caught in a deep kind of mist.

Marie remembered that the woman who entered the room, had been called queen Nia by Echo and now she could take a real look of her.

The queen was middle aged woman with light brown hair. Scars had obviously been carved into her face with great care creating an angular pattern and a headpiece rested on her hair, hanging into her forehead. Marie guessed it was supposed to be a sort of crown, the woman was a queen after all so it made sense. She was dressed in dark leather and a heavy coat lined with light fur. Her light-coloured eyes somehow starkly stood out in her face and Marie barely managed to meet her gaze.

“Who are you, girl?” the queen asked Marie in a demanding tone.

“I…” Marie started “I do not remember” she finally answered honestly.

The queen’s eyes had narrowed dangerously when the girl paused with her answer and Marie gulped instinctively.

“What a pity” she drawled almost bored, before a calculating gleam appeared within her eyes “You are on my land now, girl, so you are one of my subjects now”.

“Yes…” Marie answered uneasily, feeling already that this was not a good thing.

The girl had barely closed her mouth again, before she was backhanded harshly.

With wide eyes she held a hand to her stinging cheek and looked at the queen in disbelief.

“You do not speak without permission, girl!” the queen’s reprimand was sharp and Marie immediately nodded still wide eyed.

“Your education starts now” she continued, standing up swiftly and pulling the girl along with a strength Marie had not suspected from her.

Marie internally wondered what education the woman might have in mind, but her cheek was still stinging from the last slap, so she kept her tongue.

But she learned quickly not to question what was demanded of her. Marie actually learned quickly not to question anything at all.

Apparently being a subject to the queen was both a great honour and a pledge of life. She rarely saw the queen in person, but she was handed over to the royal guard and “trained” by them.

Marie had hoped that the guards would be friendlier to her, but she recognized her error soon enough. No one was to be trusted in this fortress. Speaking up meant punishment. Making a wrong move meant punishment. Not performing to her best abilities meant punishment. Basically, everything resulted in one kind of punishment or the other.

On the first few nights, Marie had cried herself to sleep. But she was punished for crying as well. Crying meant expressing weakness and being weak was not tolerated at all.

Marie was told over and over again that the commander and all Trikru were the enemies and that they needed to be extinguished.

At the beginning of her stay she did not understand what that meant or why that was the case. But she soon realized that it was easier to simply accept what she was told.

She was being horded together with a bunch of other kids, some older and some younger. If she had thought to find friends among them, Marie was sourly mistaken. They were competitors if nothing else. Nothing was free here, not even food or a place to sleep. Whoever fought best in the training pits was fed and got a warm place to sleep, whoever did not, went hungry and some even had to sleep outside. Marie had already seen two younger children freeze overnight, when they had been forced to sleep in the yard.

Marie had great difficulties to compete with the others, she was physically weaker. In conclusion she had went hungry many times, for some reason she was always at least allowed to sleep inside.

What Marie would not have even thought about at all was that the other children were jealous of her, for being allowed to sleep in the warmth even though she had not fought for that right. Four boys and two girls attacked her for exactly that reason one night.

If it had not been for Echo hearing a struggle, Marie was sure she would have been killed by them.

The queen made Marie kill all of them, one by one. It was clear, that Marie had no other choice, or she would be killed along them. None of the other children ever approached her again and she had learned her lesson; never trust anyone.

She had cried the last time when Echo had cut off her long braids. Red bands had still been interwoven into them and Marie could not put a finger onto why, but she just knew that they had been important. Her hair was now just at shoulder length and Echo had impatiently taught her how to braid it away from her face efficiently.

 

Lexa found it harder to get used to the fact that Marie was gone than she had anticipated. She held her breath in meetings whenever the Azgeda ambassador spoke, afraid to hear signs of Marie’s death. She was even hesitating to enter her quarters at night. Although Lexa knew that no one should be able to enter them with the heightened security, but still, she almost expected Marie’s head to await her in her quarters.

While Marie had been with them, she had brought her closer together again to her former mentor, but now the void between them seemed larger than ever.

Anya was filled with a mixture of deep grieve, anger and a thirst for revenge. As the commander, Lexa even contemplated if it would be better to send the general away from Polis again, back to one of the smaller villages of Trikru. It was impossible to talk to her at the moment. The woman spent all the hours of the day exerting herself until complete exhaustion on the training pits. Lexa hoped that she would wake from this almost crazed grieve and return to her duty. She had not directly told the general of the messenger she had send into Azgeda lands, but Lexa doubted that the general had not heard about it by now.

She had seen to it that another general would oversee Clarke’s training from now on. But she was aware that she could not let Anya continue like she was doing for much longer.

Clarke had drawn a few pictures of Marie for both the commander and the general, but Lexa had insisted that all would remain within her quarters. The general would only destroy them in the current state of her mind. Lexa hoped that Anya would one day appreciate a picture of Marie to remember her by, but it would certainly take time.

 

The day Lexa had awaited with anticipation dawned like any other had since Marie had been gone. Clarke had taken up to sleeping within the commander’s quarters immediately and Lexa was grateful not to be alone in the hours of the night.

She had asked Titus to have the older nightbloods escorted to the throne room to sit in on the meeting with the ambassadors. The children had all reacted differently to the information that Marie would not be returning. Boo had taken it very hard and Nimo and Saria, who had been closest to Marie, had not taken the news well as well. Without Marie’s interference Ontari had quickly been turned back into the outcast among the novitiates, the others still trained with her, when they were ordered to do so, but none of them spoke a word with her.

Ontari did not really care if the other novitiates spoke to her, or not. She missed the blonde-haired girl stronger than she would have thought possible. Ontari tried to keep her eyes and ears open to find out if definite proof of Marie’s death had been found, a part of her just needed to believe that the girl was still alive somewhere. Marie was gone for a whole moon now and there had been no sign or message from queen Nia, Ontari had half expected to be summoned back to the queen, but nothing had reached her so far.

The meeting in itself was of no greater significance. But at the end of the meeting a rider from Azgeda was allowed inside under the guise of bringing the answer to Lexa’s messenger from the queen. Anya was not attending this meeting, she rarely attended any meetings anymore if she was not specifically ordered to do so.

Lexa felt her breath halt and her heart stutter when the rider strode into the throne room. It was obvious that the man did not expect to leave this room ever again. She ceased her brow in confusion when he did not pull a sack with a head from somewhere but laid down a shawl at her feet, bowing deeply in a mocking gesture.

“What is this?” she seethed angrily. Her temper had been shorter in the meetings since Marie’s disappearance and the ambassadors had been on their best behaviour to not incense the irate commander even further.

“The queen’s answer” was the only thing the man offered.

It was Titus who bent down and opened the shawl to reveal blonde braids of hair, still containing the red bands of the commander.

Lexa felt like a hole had been punched into her chest and she had to regain her breath, before she could order the man’s execution through clenched teeth and to dismiss all the ambassadors.

Ontari tried to linger behind. She knew how the queen operated and if hair was the only thing that was send, it surely meant that Marie was alive. She tried to explain exactly that to the commander, but she was thrown out of the throne room, before she could say anything.

The guards were in uproar and Ontari took the chance that offered. She left the tower without as much as a glance from the guards. It was easy to get hold of a horse again and she knew enough of queen Nia’s loyalists within the walls of Polis to be gifted supplies and sufficient clothing to reach the palace of the queen. She managed to slip out of the city, before her absence had been noticed.

 

 

Chapter 16: Chapter 151 - 160

Chapter Text

Chapter 151

Anya followed the summons to the commander’s quarters. She had evaded the rooms like the plague. Everything within the chambers now reminded her of the girl she had lost.

She took a deep breath and steeled her features, feeling the multiple superficial wounds she had acquired on the training pits sting as she straightened. Anya was unable to face her own thoughts and grieve, so she had found distraction and relieve in the physical exertion.

Lexa stood at a table in the chambers. She had gotten rid of the regalia of the commander. She would not mourn Marie as the commander, but solely as herself. She had given Anya enough space to grieve on her own over the last four weeks, but now that they had proof of the girl’s death, they could both find closure. She was awkwardly grateful to only have received Marie’s hair and not her head, being able to remember the girl like she had been alive. Her features not distorted by death.

Anya opened her mouth to ask why she had been summoned, but she faltered in her steps when she recognized what was lying on the table. Marie’s blonde hair in combination with the red bands interwoven into them was unique enough not to be mistaken.

She felt the anger that had been coursing through her veins without any pause, drain suddenly, leaving behind a hollow kind of calm and her voice sounded almost wooden “So, we finally know”.

Lexa nodded with a grave expression. There was no question in her mind now anymore, Marie was dead and would never return to them.

Anya stretched out her hand to take one of the braids, but let it fall back to her side, looking at a wall instead of at Lexa, clearly still unwilling to face her feelings.

Lexa took one of the braids and mutely pressed it into her mentor’s hands, their eyes connecting for long moments. She was relived that her general’s brown eyes were no longer filled with crazed rage and she shared the bone-deep grieve reflected in them. They had both held Maire within their hearts and shared the loss of the girl now.

“Clarke has made something for you” Lexa broke the silence with a heavy voice, she carefully eyed the older woman, hoping that the timing would be better now. She knew for a fact that Anya still carried Tris’ braid around.

Lexa unfolded a piece of parchment and showed it to Anya. She knew that she had made the right decision to give it to her former mentor now, when a melancholic smile ghosted around Anya’s lips.

Clarke had sketched Marie as she played on the icy surface of the frozen river, Risha jumping around her feet. The absolute joy was clear on the girl’s face and through Clarke’s great artistic talent it was as if Anya could just see the girl on the ice again and even hearing her giggles.

“She has made others” Lexa added after a moment, but Anya shook her head. It was obvious the woman did not wish to them at the moment and Lexa would not force her either.

“What do you plan to do about Azgeda?” Anya asked, once she had cautiously folded the parchment and stored it within her coat, together with one of the braids.

Lexa’s green eyes flashed angrily. The queen had not met her explicit order to hand Marie back over to them and by sending the girl’s blonde hair instead, she could finally do something against the older woman.

“Nia needs to be removed from the throne once and for all” the commander proclaimed, voice hard and cold “Azgeda have gambled away their place in my coalition”. She might not have been in the position to get revenge on Costia’s behalf, when she had been taken form her by the queen, but the circumstances had changed and Lexa would finally be able to get her revenge.

Anya’s features had turned as cold as Lexa’s voice and she nodded in agreement, a hard gleam within her brown eyes.

 

On the next morning Lexa had all of the ambassadors summoned to the throne room. She had donned on her full commander regalia, complemented by her war paint and Gustus and Anya both stood at her side.

The Azgeda ambassador had been held within his assigned quarters, where he would stay, until Lexa had decided on what his fate would be.

The other ambassadors seemed to be anxiously awaiting why they had been summoned.

“Queen Nia of Azgeda has chosen not to return my second to my side, against my explicit orders” Lexa started in a harsh tone “By doing so, the queen has made a direct attack against my second and in conclusion, me. The queen consequently abducted a future flamekeeper and has hidden a nightblood for years. Such actions will not be tolerated by anyone!” Her voice thundered over the ambassadors like a cracking whip. “All trade bargains with Ice Nation are void from now on and they will not be part of the coalition for another day. They will stand alone against our united forces. Queen Nia will be removed from her throne for all her transgressions against the laws of the coalition.”

They would need to plan to move their combined forces closer to the Ice Nation border. Once word reached the Ice Queen, she was sure to mobilize her forces as well.

So, they started to plan for another war.

 

Marie had no idea, how many weeks might have passed, since Echo had brought her to the Ice Queen. She had stopped to try to keep track of the days. In the beginning of her training, she had been so exhausted physically that she felt asleep almost instantly. The members of the royal guard filled every waking hour of the day with training. She knew that her training her advanced, she was quicker on her feet, quicker with her reflexes and she got less injuries during the training session.

The only time she had seen the queen again had been the time, when she had to kill the other children, who had attacker her. Her stomach still gave an uncomfortable lurch if she thought of that. So, Marie was nervous, when she was summoned in front of the throne again.  

The queen’s gaze was cold and calculating as she taxed Marie where she kneeled in front of the throne.

“You know why you are here?” Nia asked, looking down at the girl. The child had already changed visibly. She seemed to have lost weight, replaced by pure muscle and the soft features of her youthful face were beginning to sharpen. Her grey eyes, which had looked confused and lost on the day of her arrival, had turned suspicious and colder. The emotions were still too easy to read within their depths and Nia would take great pleasure in truly breaking the girl to her will.

The guards who had so far overseen the girl’s training had relayed to her, that she indeed possessed an inherit talent for fighting with two swords and throwing knifes. But her first instincts obviously still were not to attack and kill, but only to defend herself. That would need to be changed quickly.

“To do your bidding, my queen” Marie answered trying to keep any residual doubt still lingering in her mind to herself.

But something must have still shown, as the queen swept from her throne and viciously backhanded Marie only a second later.

“You are here to regain your purpose of life, Marie” Nia drawled in an almost sickly-sweet voice. It was the first time she had used the girl’s name and she would keep the occasions scarce as well.

Marie’s grey eyes snapped up to the woman widened in disbelieve but she still felt a very small sliver of hope, that this woman might be able to help her somehow. She had tried hard to remember something about her previous life and although there were little aspects she could see in her dreams, they did not make sense or actually were not clear enough to make sense.

Nia softly caressed the cheek, she had only moments ago slapped and the corners of her lips twitched slightly, when the girl leaned into the touch ever so softly. She had been clear on how she wanted her royal guard to treat the girl, she should have only been faced with violence. If her assumption about the girl’s soft spirit were correct, she would be hungering after gentleness and do almost anything to receive it.

When the queen pulled back again, Marie subconsciously tried to lean deeper into the touch. Nia straightened herself, looming over the girl, but she kept her voice soft “Everything will be alright. You are going to be moved into my rooms today. Away from the other children.”

Marie nodded with a cautious expression, surprise flashing over her features momentarily.

“They are jealous of you, Marie” Nia drawled “And do you know why?”

Marie slightly shook her head in the negative not daring to speak up.

“Because you are special” Nia concluded with a false smile “And they know that they are not worth my time and attention, but you are, Marie”.

Marie blinked in confusion at the woman. She did not understand why the queen seemed to have changed her opinion about her so starkly. She internally wondered if she might have truly been succeeding in her training. But she would not question small mercies now.

The queen held out her hand to the girl and Marie tentatively took it, with a very slight smile on her features.

Nia internally congratulated herself, she had the girl exactly where she wanted her. Breaking her would be almost too easy now. Another few weeks of a mixture of scarcely handed out gentleness and “lessons” with the excuse to make her stronger again and the girl would be nothing more than a willingness puppet.

 

Anya had organised a search through the whole tower and the walls of Polis and when she came back empty-handed, she reported to Lexa, that the Ice Nation nightblood had somehow slipped away. Curiously the girl had not killed anyone on her way, she had simply knocked out the boy working at the stables now.

Lexa took in the news in resigned silence. She knew that Ontari’s compliance had been caused greatly by the friendship developing with Marie, so it did not really surprise her much that the girl had opted to run away now. Internally she was just grateful that the Ice Nation nightblood had not tried to use the chance to finally eliminate some of the other novitiates who would be competing with her in the next conclave.

Titus urged her to send warriors behind the nightblood girl. She had officially been introduced as a novitiate, so it was well within her rights to do so, but Lexa declined. It would help no one in the end, if she forced the dark-haired girl back into Polis. She could only hope now, that Ontari would return to Polis after her death and not start another assassination attempt to end her reign.

Anya had only thinned her lips and snorted in disbelief. The general could understand Lexa’s train of thought, although she did not agree with it. She still shared Titus’ inclination to simply have the girl killed or at the very least brought back to Polis.

Lexa had spoken with Monty in his function of the Skykru ambassador the day before. Markus Kane had relayed his condolence for Marie’s death and wanted the commander to know that Skykru would stand with her in the case of a war breaking out. Skykru might not have much to offer when it came to warriors, but they had still not fulfilled their disarming completely and she had agreed that Skykru soldiers would be allowed to join her army with their own weapons, she would be stupid not to allow them and use their superiority.

Lexa and Anya had held an alternate funeral rite for Marie, burning her hair; both of them had of course kept a braid as a keepsake for themselves, but they had figuratively set the girl’s spirit free, they highly doubted they would ever get the chance to burn her body, so this would have to do.

The rite had brought them, what they both desperately needed, namely closure. Anya had accepted that the girl, she had regarded as her own, had been lost forever. She would probably forever regret leaving Marie on her own, but she knew that the past was unchangeable and she could not dwell on it forever.

Lexa had stored Marie’s braid and one of Clarke’s drawings of the girl within the box under her bed. Clarke had looked at her a silent question in her blue eyes as she did so, but she had accepted that Lexa did not wish to speak about the contents of the box. The commander had shed the last tears for Marie as she stored her keepsakes away and together with the physical reminder of the girl, she forcefully tried to push her from her mind. She needed to be strong for her people, if war broke out once again, she needed to be at her fullest strength.

 

Ontari rode through the first day and night without a stop, fearing that the commander would have already send someone to either force her back or to finally eliminate her. She did not know for sure how losing her beloved second would change the Trikru woman, she had seen the rage building in the general. Ontari knew that Lexa was not as driven by her emotions as her former mentor was, but both of them believed Marie to be lost forever. She just held onto the hope, that the queen had found some use for Marie and not yet killed her.

She doubted that her welcome would be a warm one though. She had failed her queen on every account and she was aware of that. Ontari hoped that the black blood running through her veins would be enough reason for the queen to keep her alive though. She knew that Nia still wished to subdue the other clans and there was no better option than to install a commander under her own control to rule over all others.

She was no stranger to pain and she could already picture what kind of welcome the queen would give her, Ontari’s only real hope was that she would see if Marie was alive quickly, she was prepared to play her part again. She knew of the methods the queen used to break and utilize people and she internally prayed that she was not too late to save Marie.

She had no real plan in action on how exactly she planned to rescue Marie, but she would see, what she could do once she reached the queen’s palace.

 

Marie groaned in pain, biting her lips harshly and trying to blink away the tears stinging in her eyes. Apparently, there was no greater sign of weakness for the queen than shedding tears.

“Oh, sweet child, you are going to become strong under my care” Nia caressed the girl’s cheek in the mocking version of a loving gesture. Her gaze was as cold as ice as she looked down at the half naked girl in front of her.

Marie had been forced to kneel in front of the wall for what felt like hours without end, whenever she started to sag just a little bit, a whip cracked down against her back, forcing her back into position. The muscles in her thighs almost screamed in protest and she doubted she would be able to keep that position for much longer.

This was not the first session of this sort since Marie had been moved into the queen’s chambers. The queen called them “lessons” which were needed to finally make her strong. In her time with the royal guard she had learned that she was not strong enough yet to compete with children her age and that seemed to be what the queen had in mind, or at least Marie reasoned that in her mind. From now on, she only ever saw the queen and no one else for days on end. She was not allowed to leave the chambers, apparently, she needed to be protected. She did not question the queen from what she needed protection in the first place.

Marie thought it must have been around a week later when the queen made her accompany her to the throne room for the first time. The queen wanted to show her, why the Trikru were the enemies and why she needed to be protected from them until she became strong.

Marie followed the queen obediently, her head held high. The queen had stressed to her that as soon as she stepped foot out of the chambers, she was to act strong. Show a proud and confident front, unmovable and cold. But within the quarters Marie was not allowed to look up or speak without being asked to do so. She had wondered why during the first days with the queen, but now Marie simply accepted that she needed the queen’s guidance.

A woman was kneeling in front of the throne, when they entered the throne room. Her hands were bound and the armour she wore was ripped and showed clear signs of physical torture on her body. Her hair was caked with dirt and blood and Marie absent-minded wondered what colour her hair had, it was completely unrecognizable in this state.

Although the woman’s eyes were swollen, it was obvious she had been beaten, Marie could see them widening when the woman noticed her. Marie straightened herself and mustered a glare for her. The queen had told her that she was a member of Trikru, a spy sent by the commander.

“We will send Lexa back your head to notify her, that you found your way into my castle” the queen drawled almost bored, calling the woman’s attention away from the girl. She knew that the woman could not speak anymore, her tongue had been removed on her orders, so it was impossible for her to tell Marie anything that might confuse her.

The woman’s gaze was resigned, she knew that she would not leave these halls alive again. She held her head high and proud when the queen stepped down her throne and cut her throat.

Marie did not even flinch when blood sprayed from the woman’s throat, splattering on her slightly, as the queen had motioned her closer.

“She was here to abduct you and bring you to the commander, Marie” the queen explained calmly, as if speaking to a much younger child.

Marie did not question, why the commander would do such a thing. The queen had told her, that the commander would try to seize her for herself, bringing her away from the queen. Nia had convinced her that she was the only one to truly care for her and that she would one day be required to kill the commander, so that they could forever be together.

 

 

Chapter 152

It took Ontari nearly half a moon cycle to reach the queen’s fortress. A snow storm had surprised her on the way and forced her to seek shelter in a cave. She had been lucky that the horse had sustained the pace she had set and the horse was obedient enough to stay in the cave with her.

The guards at the entrance of the fortress recognized her at once and she was brought into the castle without any word.

On the way through the halls Ontari let her eyes wander over everyone, frantically searching for Marie among them, but she failed to locate the younger girl.

Marie was in the throne room again. A routine of sorts had been set for her by the queen. If the queen was pleased with her behaviour, she was allowed to accompany her out of her chambers and into the throne room. If she was not pleased, Marie was forced to stay within the queen’s chambers, chained to the walls in an uncomfortable position, which forced her into an unnatural position between sitting and standing, neither completely possible. The chains had already left deep lines within her fair skin. But last night the queen had been pleased enough with her, to allow her to sleep on a fur in front of the fireplace and to accompany her again.

She stood beside the throne, spine straight and expression stony and she waited in silence for the queen’s next orders.

When a dark-haired girl was led into the throne room, Marie inspected her suspiciously, she had long learned that every stranger could mean harm to her.

Ontari breathed an internal sigh of relieve at spotting Marie beside queen Nia. But the girl had changed almost completely and Ontari wondered why there was no reaction to her within the younger girl’s grey eyes. She was unable to focus too long on her missing reaction, when she was addressed by queen Nia.

It was obvious pretty quickly that the queen was disappointed greatly by her and she would feel her wrath soon enough.

Ontari knew she would survive and all she could think of was how to get a moment alone with Marie, away from prying eyes.

Marie marvelled over the way the older girl had looked at her. She had been searching for something within her expression. It seemed as if she should know her, judging by her reaction, but nothing ringed within her mind at the sight of the girl, not even the slightest feeling of recognition.

She watched on expressionless how the queen interrogated the older girl. She was oddly fascinated that the girl was bleeding black and not red, she had never seen such a thing before as far as she could remember.

She did not say a single word, when the queen ordered her to come with them back into her quarters. She felt a strange kind of jealousy that the older girl was also allowed into the queen’s rooms, she had thought it had been her privilege alone.

“Oh, my dumb, sweet girl” the queen commented, when she spotted the jealousy within Marie’s eyes “You are not the only one special to me. And you have not been as good as I had hoped…” her voice faded with disappointment and her fingers had barely touched the girl’s cheek.

Marie’s shoulders dropped, when the queen moved away from her. Her words and withdrawal from her hurting like the sting of a slap. “I will be better” she instantly reassured, dropping to her knees in front of the queen.

Ontari watched the younger girl with slightly widened eyes. What had happened to Marie? The girl had been gone for nearly two moons now from Polis, but that should not have been enough time to cause such a drastic change of character. It as if the girl was completely brain washed. She internally wondered if that was how she had looked like when she had been with the queen. After being in Polis for weeks and being confronted with a totally different way of thinking and getting to know the commander, Ontari easily now spotted Nia’s manipulation and they seemed to have already been successful within the younger girl.

“My queen, I was unable to succeed in killing Lexa and her … bunch of nightbloods” Ontari admitted. She already took off her shirt, she knew the drill well enough without being told what to do and it usually earned extra lashes, if Nia had to tell her what to do.

The lash fell onto her back harshly and Ontari held her breath. She had almost forgotten the stinging pain it left behind once the initial sensation faded.

The queen was called away quickly, dealing with a messenger send from the capitol.

Ontari had thought hard about what she wanted to say to Marie, once she found her, but even in her wildest fantasies, she had not forethought this scenario. So, she was lost for words now.

Even though Marie had obviously changed a great deal, a residual curiosity had obviously stayed within the girl. “You know me?” she asked, voice faltering and grey eyes glancing to the door every other second, obviously afraid the queen might return and hear them speaking.

Ontari nodded, relieved that the younger girl was willing to talk with her. “Yes, we have been friends” she reassured, keeping her expression as open as possible.

Marie looked at the older girl with probing eyes, desperately trying to remember her. Should she not remember her friends?

“Have I been here before?” Marie asked next, after a long pause. The queen had told her that she had been here for a long time and that Echo had rescued her before she could have been brought to the commander in the capitol.

Ontari shook her head “No, you have not…” she wanted to explain more. But she could not be sure if Marie would not immediately relay what she had said back to the queen and she could already hear footsteps in the hall, indicating that Nia was returning.

“Get into position” Ontari quickly rushed to tell the younger girl in a hushed tone.

Marie blinked a second and then followed the older girl’s example, kneeling in front of the wall together.

It seemed that only a second passed before the queen re-entered the chambers. The sneer on her face lessened slightly when she saw both girls already in the position she required from them.

 

Clarke came into the commander’s quarters after another long day. Lexa had changed because of Marie’s absence. She could see it in the way her whole frame seemed to be weighted down by the weight of her responsibility more. Her smiles had gotten scarcer, Marie had had a natural talent to bring out Lexa’s softer side, which the woman now tried to keep locked down tightly.

Clarke had spoken with Alira. The older handmaid seemed to be grateful that Clarke kept Lexa company, when the commander would not allow anyone else to do so.

It had become harder for Lexa to relax and completely let go of the commander within her. Clarke tried to be there for the woman when she managed to let go of the leader and simply be herself. She tried to reason with her, that even the great commander was allowed to grieve.

The preparations to move against Ice Nation was slow going. The snow had just started to melt in the lands of a few of the clans, making the movement of their forces slow and dangerous.

Starving Azgeda out would take months, before it took effect, so Lexa did not hurry her own forces yet. She knew that the people left behind needed to work more to make up for the loss of pure manpower, so she had allowed the clans enough time to cultivate their fields before they started to move. Some of the ambassadors would need weeks to reach their own lands, so it would take even longer for their warriors to reach the capitol.

She let her hand drift through the warm water the handmaidens had prepared for a bath, Lexa was supposed to return any moment now, but it seemed that her meeting was running late.

Clarke peeled slivers of scented soap into the warm water watching them dissolve and the air around her started to smell strongly of the lavender soap.

She heard Lexa’s footsteps in the halls before the doors were pulled open for the commander. Clarke went over to the main room of the commander’s quarters and slightly smiled at the other woman.

It took the commander a moment before her features lost their aloof coldness and warmth reinfused her green eyes.

Clarke immediately stepped closer to the brunette, a ritual they had become accustomed with during the last weeks. Clarke would wait until Lexa resurfaced in the commander, before she attempted to make physical contact. Lexa did not react too well to being touched in her function as a leader and she needed moments in private to let go of her mask. Her mask was firmly in place once she stepped foot out of her quarters, so Clarke understood and respected that she needed time once she returned after a long and tiring day. She knew that it must be exhausting for the other woman to hide her feelings at all times.

Clarke unbuckled the commander’s shoulder guard together with the red sash and carried both over to a chair, carefully placing both items on the chair. Lexa simply remained standing while Risha, who nowadays accompanied the woman everywhere she went, padded over to the fireplace and laid down.

Clarke returned to Lexa and started to open the commander’s thick cloak, bringing it over to the chair as well, while Lexa divested herself of her gloves and slipped out of her boots.

They spent their first minutes in private usually in silence and Lexa was grateful that Clarke did not need to fill every moment with senseless chatter.

She went into the bathroom on bare feet and while she dapped at her face with a washcloth, ridding it of the dark war paint and took off her head piece, Clarke started loosening her braids and carefully brushing out her dark curls.

Lexa smiled slightly at the bath. Clarke was already well aware of her indulgence and the blonde woman seemed to find it slightly amusing. But nevertheless, a bath was now always prepared for her before she even returned to her quarters.

Clarke did not always share the bath with her, but she stayed within the room, sketching on a piece of paper or simply conversing with Lexa about the little things.

They had gotten to know each other a lot better already. Clarke found it ironic that Lexa hated being confined indoors, but was forced to be exactly that.

Clarke had told the other woman a lot about her own past. Lexa was fascinated by the life she had had beyond the stars. Marie had already told her a lot about life on the Ark, but the young girl had been imprisoned early so Marie had not been able to tell her a lot of details.

Clarke had tried to describe to Lexa how she had liked to watch old football games together with Wells, Jaha and her farther. She had also explained to her why her father had been floated and how much she had loved the man.

“Join me” Lexa said, once she started to disrobe.

Clarke nodded with a gentle smile and undressed in what she hoped to be a seductive way.

No matter how often she saw the commander undress, Clarke was still struck by her incredible beauty. The grace with which the other woman carried herself was encompassing.

Lexa got into the tube first and Clarke settled herself against her chest, her long legs around Clarke’s hips.

They rarely spoke of politics with each other. Lexa still respected Clarke’s wishes not to be involved in politics and she tried to keep the little time they got together solely private.

Lexa was eternally grateful to have Clarke at her side now, she did not wish to think about the way she would faring now, if she were alone again.

 

Ontari had been correct with her assumption that the queen regarded her black blood more important than her obvious failure. Her back was torn open in many places, a testament to the fact of just how displeased the queen was with her. But Ontari knew that she would survive it.

Marie’s hands had shaken strongly when Nia handed her the whip. The queen had emphasised that Ontari had failed her and failure needed to be punished. Still something within her, told her, that this was not right. But she knew that she did not have a choice in the matter.

Ontari tried to get Marie to trust her again. She did not hold it against the girl that she had whipped her. Ontari was aware that she would have done the same in the past and without even thinking about it.

It seemed that Marie still had retained some sense of conscience. Ontari had tried once to tell Marie that she had been within Polis as the commander’s second, but as soon as Lexa’s name had fallen from her lips, the girl had interrupted her and snarled in a comment clearly put into her mouth by queen Nia.

She tried to convince the queen that they needed to return to the capitol before the commander could format her army and rally the other clans behind her. In truth she just wanted to remove Marie from Nia’s influence as soon as possible. Unfortunately, the queen was convinced that Marie had not been under her tutelage long enough. Ontari had no idea, if Marie could regain her memories someday, but the girl had a gentle soul and she would crumble under Nia.

What Ontari did not know, was the fact that the commander already had officially denounced Azgeda from the coalition. The queen had taken the news with deathly silence. She hoped that the Trikru woman would be dumb enough to lead her army into their lands and into the ice that never thawed.

Ontari tried to keep her eyes open on how she could escape with Marie. Whenever she was alone with the girl now, she tried to convince her that Nia would never get to the point where she thought that Marie would be able to fulfil her task, so that they needed to leave without being ordered to. She hoped that she could convince her on the way to Polis, that she in fact did not wish to kill the commander.

At the moment the queen had them under constant watch, so it was utterly impossible to slip away. The only positive thing was that the queen had them moved into a single room to sleep, so she now had the nights alone with the girl.

Ontari saw that Marie still suffered from nightmares, but the girl had learned to keep silent through them somehow. She would awake with a start and cower under her fur, biting her lip to keep still. Ontari moved over to the other girl’s bed and tried to sooth her. In the first nights it had startled Marie even more and the girl had moved away, shrinking into the wall afraid to be touched by her. But over the course of a few nights the child had started to accept her subtle touches. It began with a soft touch to the shoulder, progressed to an arm around her back and at the end Marie cuddled up to her completely, silent sobs shaking her body.

“I … I try … I try to be good” the girl cried, wetting Ontari’s shirt with her tears.

Ontari enveloped the girl, muting the sounds of her distress. She tried to reassure her, that she was good. With a pained flash she remembered, how she had desperately tried to gain the queen’s goodwill for years. She now knew that to be an utterly impossible feat, but she had been literally in the girl’s shoes.

She would be lying if she said, that the queen’s strikes had lost even a little bit of the pain they inflicted. But Ontari was better equipped to deal with it now, she knew, that she was only waiting for the right moment to flee.

Once the opportunity presented itself, she was convinced that Marie would come willingly with her. What happened when they reached Polis was a worry for another time.

 

The days turned into weeks and the weeks started to turn into moons. It was hard to keep track of time.

They were both subjected to more training by the members of the royal guard. Marie’s skill had advanced considerably and Ontari weirdly thought that commander and her general would surely be proud of her achievements once they saw her again.

The torture by the hands of the queen continued almost every day. Ontari tried to look after the girl as much as she could. She incensed the queen’s wrath on purpose more often than not, simply to shield the girl form the queen’s violence.

Even though Ontari could see more and more of the soft girl vanish, turned into a cold and suspicious version of the sweet child that had befriended her in the capitol, once they were alone in their small room, Ontari managed to coax a little bit of Marie’s old self, what she hoped to be her natural self, back to the surface.

Ontari was worried, when Marie did not return to their small room one night. She had asked the guards for an audience with the queen and had been denied. She anxiously waited for the girl to return, but there had been no sign of her during the night, Ontari had stayed awake all night to wait for her.

When Ontari saw Marie next it was obvious that something had changed. Something Ontari could not name at the exact second. But the girl was pale, deathly pale, she flinched at every slight movement of the queen and the little bit of gentleness within her eyes had vanished. When Marie truly looked at Ontari for the first moment, the nightblood felt her heart plummet into her stomach, the girl’s eyes looked completely empty. The queen had finally managed to break the girl’s spirit. Ontari did not know what exactly had transpired between the queen and Marie, for the girl to finally break and Marie never told her. Even when Ontari tried to coax it out of her, the girl had withdrawn completely, not saying another word for the whole night.

Marie did not come back for more nights and every time it happened, the girl would return more subdued and paler. But while her spirit seemed to be crumbling in privacy, within the throne room the girl looked like a vicious beast that just waited to be released. Marie did not hesitate or falter any longer, when she was tasked to torture or kill someone, she even seemed to start to enjoy inflicting pain on someone.

Marie’s body which had been free of almost all scars, had now started to be littered with scars. Parts of the tattoo, which had been so carefully crafted, had already been disfigured by scars resulting from harsh lashings after months of the same treatment.

Nia changed her mind, when their ambassadors head was delivered into her castle. Apparently, the commander was losing her patience with the queen. Whispers about the clans mobilizing their own forces with the intention of not attacking but closing off Azgeda’s borders had reached her, forcing the queen’s hand.

So, the queen had decided that it was finally time to send back Marie. She had already ordered her generals to raise their army, anticipating a war to break out as soon as the commander finally fell. Ontari would be send to accompany the girl with the intent of diminishing the nightblood children and take the legal position of the next commander.

Something about the way the queen saw them off and the attention she bestowed upon Marie felt off to Ontari and made her skin crawl with instinctive disgust. It was obvious that Marie felt similar, the girl’s features had turned slightly green and she was desperately trying to hide the sudden shaking of her fingers.

They had been given various weapons and two of the best horses from the queen’s personal stables. The journey back to the capitol would still take them several days and the queen would wait for a moon to start moving her army.

The only thing resonating through Marie’s mind, were the queen’s last words to her “Bring me Lexa’ head, my sweet girl and make me proud. Proof to me, that you are the special one.” And she would.

 

 

 

Chapter 153

Ontari tried to use the time the travel to the capitol afforded to her, to try to get Marie to really talk to her. Since Nia had started to keep the girl overnight, Ontari had not managed to really get her to tell her anything anymore. It was, as if the child had closed off completely and the change worried Ontari greatly. She did not know for sure, what had caused the sudden change in the girl’s behaviour, but she knew that something serious must have happened.

But it was obvious fairly quickly into their journey, that Ontari was failing miserably. If anything, it seemed that with every attempt she made to get Marie to talk to her, even about insignificant things, the more silent and closed-off the girl got in reaction.

Ontari found it extremely hard to be confronted with Marie’s grey eyes, which had seemed to always hold a shine and twinkle and simply shown with life. Now they were dull and lifeless and Ontari had no idea on how to help the clearly suffering girl. She could only hope that the commander and general would be able to reach the girl in ways, she was not able to.

But it also worried her, what would transpire once they reached the capitol. The Ice Nation nightblood highly doubted, that she would get the warmest welcome. She doubted it would be as brutal and pain causing as the queen’s welcome had been. Nevertheless, she was aware that the commander would not be pleased with her leaving the capitol, which was explicitly against the rules of a novitiate, but she was willing and prepared to bear the consequences.

Marie looked away from the gaze of the older girl. She was constantly feeling Ontari’s eyes on herself since they had left the queen’s castle and it was granting on her nerves. She did not know, what to make of the older girl. She had actually found a little support in the nightblood. But the queen had convinced her, that relying on another person for support was weakness and only the queen herself would be reliable enough to truly always be there. Marie had been confused, when the queen had told her, that she should not be allowing Ontari to touch her in any form. But Nia had made it clearly that no one else was to touch what was hers. Marie on the one hand truly hoped to be hers and on the other hand she did not like the way the queen’s touches had changed in the last weeks. The way she had been touching her, made her stomach role and her insides clench in fright.

She shuddered even now at the memory and forcefully banned the pictures flashing in front of her eyes from her mind. Her eyes turned hard and cold as she met the older girl’s gaze. The queen had told her, that one day the nightblood would be commander and Marie would be installed as her second, a great honour obviously. And apparently a friendship between a commander and their second was frowned upon. So, Nia had insisted that she needed to keep her distance and she would do as she had been told, even if she did not understand everything. She believed that the queen only wanted what was best for her.

Their journey passed in almost complete silence. Whenever the older girl tried to address her with anything, beside ordering her to do something to set up the camp for the night, Marie ignored her, clenching her jaw and looking away. Something within her wished to simply tell her, what she wanted to know. Marie was aware that the nightblood seemed to desperately want to know about what the queen had done to her during her nightly stays within the queen’s chambers, but she could not tell her. She could not tell anyone, it was their secret. Something the queen said she only shared with her now.

It became obvious when they neared the boarders to Ice Nation. The land was beginning to thaw and Marie finally could see something green again, beside the snow that had surrounded her for the last week. She still remembered that she had woken in within a forest and the voice that had called for her to hide was still resonating through her dreams, but nothing else had come back and she had started to accept, that she would never know who she previously been. The queen had been steadfast in her opinion that it did not matter, who she had been, but that only who she had developed into mattered now.

Movements within the treeline caught her attention and Marie sharply pulled at the reigns of the horse, which had been a personal gift from the queen. Nia had told her that the white stallion was one of her own favourite mounts and that it was a great present of honour to be gifted such a precious horse.

Ontari had also caught up with the shadows moving through the trees and pulled her horse to a stop, her hands on the handle of her sword. Her brows creased slightly, as far as she knew the border between Ice Nation and Trikru had not been patrolled anymore. But she had not considered what reaction the commander might have had to receiving her seconds hair, before she left the capitol.

Warriors dropped out of the trees, dressed with the armour of Trikru and Ontari pulled her hands away from her sword, holding them upright in surrender. They were overpowered ten to two and she hoped that their welcome would be easier, if they did not fight back now.

Marie looked between the warriors and Ontari with slight confusion within her eyes. Ontari immediately shook her head at the girl, hoping to convey that she should not try to fight as well. After a moment’s hesitation, where the warriors already came closer, their own weapons drawn, Marie also held up her hands in surrender.

“What do you want on coalition’s lands?” one of the warriors addressed Ontari, identifying her as the older of the two girls.

Ontari’s confusion only grew. Had Azgeda been ousted from the coalition? If she thought about it, it was well within Lexa’s rights to demand such a thing, but she wondered why the queen had not told them about the change of status. They would have surely chosen a different travel route or tried to disguise themselves.

“I am here to escort her to Polis” Ontari called back, pointing to Marie.

Fortunately, one of the warriors had been stationed in TonDC previously and already seen the girl. The man’s eyes widened noticeably and he let his weapon sink down.

“It is the commander’s second…” the man said, disbelief colouring his voice strongly.

Marie looked at the man with a frown, but she did not show any other reaction. The queen had briefed her on the fact that people might react weirdly to her and say things which did not make any sense. She was to ignore them and only focus on her mission, nothing else mattered.

Another warrior stepped up closer to Ontari, still sitting on her horse. “You do not want to kill me” the girl said, before he even made a grab for his own weapon.

“And why is that so, Azgeda scum?” he sneered with a heated glare.

Ontari sighed under her breath. Trikru and Ice Nation had never liked each other, but she could only wonder how deep the hatred would run now between both clans and the other clans would probably not be too benevolent towards members of Azgeda as well anymore.

She pulled a small dagger from her thigh and quickly sliced her hand, holding up the bleeding appendage and broadcasting her dark blood to all of them.

The warrior let her weapon sink with a frown “The novitiate that ran from the capitol” was his sneered comment.

Ontari simply glared down at him “And now I wish to return to the capitol” she said to him in a harsh voice.

She was not surprised when three of the warriors were dispatched to accompany them into the capitol. Marie looked at the warriors with an unreadable expression and Ontari wondered what the queen had told the girl to keep her this silent. It was so unlike the curious young girl she herself had abducted from Polis. At this time, she had condemned the girl for her open nature and now she wished to find something of her again.

The ride turned even more silent from now on. Ontari internally debated if she should try to talk to the warrior who obviously had recognized Marie, but she rejected that idea almost immediately. All of them had reacted hatefully towards her and she highly doubted that any of them would be willing to listen to her or to believe in her word. She only hoped that Marie would not succeed in killing the commander at the first moment they faced each other.

Marie watched the three warriors who accompanied them in silence. The way they had reacted to the older girl only confirmed the queen’s words. There was a Trikru commander right now and the Trikru were obviously openly against anything to do with Ice Nation.

Although the nightblood had claimed that she had already been in the capitol, had apparently even lived there for a few months. But Marie did not feel any flash of recognition when they finally neared the walls of Polis.

The reactions of the people of Polis to her confused Marie greatly. She heard whispers of what a wonder it was, that she returned, or how much she had physically changed. While the people reacted openly bad about Ontari, they seemed to be happy to see her return.

Marie kept her gaze solely locked in front of her, her mind whirling with what felt like a thousand questions. With a flash of fear, Marie recognized that she would have almost preferred to stay at the queen’s side than being exposed to all this confusion. Why were the people looking at her like this?

Ontari watched Marie all the time they moved through the streets Polis in the direction of the tower. She was not deaf to the hateful comments of the citizens being hissed at her, but she ignored them. She felt a certain amount of relief when she saw Marie’s grey eyes flash with fascinated interest at the first sight of the tower, hoping that it meant that something of the child still remained within her.

At their arrival at the base of the tower, they were both ordered to surrender all of their weapons. Ontari complied willingly without hesitation, while Marie seemed to freeze for a second before she started to take her weapons of off her person.

The warrior who had previously already seen Marie in TonDC had been openly watching the girl during their complete journey and it was obvious that the man had gotten suspicious of the way the girl was acting. His dark eyes were watching the younger girl like a hawk and Ontari breathed a sigh of relieve when she heard him mutter to one of their companions that the girl was behaving off and that the commander should be warned beforehand.

Marie got nervous visibly when they were not led to the elevator like the queen had told her they would be, but instead led down the stairs to the dungeons.

Ontari did not even try to resist the warriors as they were nicely escorted into the narrow and dark halls of the dungeons. Marie did struggle against the hands of the man when Ontari was led into a separate small room and the man wanted her to follow him into another cell.

Ontari called back to the girl to cease her struggling and simply comply. It was obvious that Marie was deeply confused now that their immediate plan had not worked out.

She watched how Marie was led passed another turn and out of her sight and she sighed, she could only hope now that nothing would happen. She highly doubted that the commander would execute her, at least not if she was given a chance to explain why she had chosen to leave the capitol and to return.

She knew that whoever would come to see Marie would need to go passed her own cell and Ontari hoped that it would be the commander and not the general. The commander seemed more reasonable than the general to her and more likely to even listen to her words. She knew for a fact that Marie still had at least one, if not more, blades hidden beneath her clothes and if the commander just rushed into the girl’s cells Ontari was relatively sure that Marie would use one of those blades to try and kill the other woman. She knew just how deeply the queen’s manipulation now ran within the younger girl’s mind. Nia had been lucky that Marie had lost her memories and was even more susceptible to her manipulations.

Ontari waited almost anxiously for the sound of other footsteps, but she knew that it could take some time before someone would come to see Marie, she highly doubted that she would be of the highest priority. The warriors who had brought them down into the dungeons had long returned to the base level of the tower and it was likely that word was already being spread about the commander’s second’s return.

It seemed as if the minutes were ticking by awfully slowly, but it was entirely possible that the commander and her general had not even been within the vicinity of the tower.

Lexa had been in the middle of a meeting with the ambassadors when an urgent messenger was sent to her, proclaiming that her second had been brought back to Polis and was waiting within a holding cell to be seen. She had re-read the hastily scribbled message several times before the words settled into her mind, she had completely ignored the meeting as it proceeded around her.  

Anya and Gustus both watched the commander out of the corner of their eyes. Titus was directing the discussion between the ambassadors for the moment, when it became clear that Lexa had completely stopped to listen. The woman’s features seemed to have gotten paler and shock was evident within her green eyes.

Lexa abruptly stood from her throne, silencing Titus with the wave of her hand and her voice was tightly controlled as she hissed the commander for all the ambassadors to leave instantly. Her expression was fiery enough that no one dared to disregard the young leader and it took only short moments before the ambassadors left the throne room.

Lexa handed the letter over to Anya who looked at the younger woman questioningly. She was not as practised in reading as her former second was and it took her a moment to decipher the handwriting and she blinked down at the letter in utter disbelief.

“Who has brought this forward?” Lexa asked Titus pointing to the message still within Anya’s hands.

“A Trikru patrol who had been stationed near the Azgeda border” the flamekeeper instantly replied, but his features were slightly worried of what the message contained; it was obvious that whatever it was had a great impact on the commander.

“I want to see whoever has written this right now!” the commander’s voice was unyielding. Hope was blossoming within her chest, if it had indeed been a Trikru patrol it was likely that the written words were true. But how could they be? Nia had killed Marie, had she not?

Anya had re-read the letter in the mean time and while Titus stormed out of the throne room to collect the author of the message, the general clearly wanted to follow the flamekeeper and go down to the dungeons immediately.

Lexa halted the older woman before she could leave the throne room “Wait” she ordered “We will not go and see whoever was brought here, before we heard what the patrol can relay”. It was obvious that the commander did not believe that the girl within their dungeons was indeed Marie, she was forbidding herself to hope in such a foolish fashion. Lexa thought more in the way that it could be a trap, another girl similar enough in looks to deceive them.

Anya furrowed her brow, clearly not pleased with the order, but she nodded with a frown. She was torn between the wish to go down immediately see Marie and the fear that it would not be Marie but only a stranger to them. She impatiently tapped her foot the whole time as they waited for Titus to return with the patrol.

Gustus had been handed the letter by Anya as well and his dark eyes were staring at the piece of paper with disbelieve. All of them had been sure that Nia would immediately kill Marie once she was within her reach and there seemed to be no sensible reason for the Ice queen to keep the girl alive at all, so, what had changed or who had been disguised as Marie?

The warrior who had written the message had fortunately still waited at the base of the tower and Titus had had no problem in locating the man. He had half expected to be questioned about his message anyway.

Lexa looked at the young man standing opposite her a few minutes later, probing him with a piercing gaze “Why have you written this?” she asked in a clear voice, holding up his message.

The warrior inclined his head and explained that he might not have spoken to the girl in TonDC, but had seen enough of her to know that something was off. The subtle hints Ontari had tried to give them had finally tipped him off together with the lacking reaction of the girl to return to the tower.

Surprise flashed over the commander’s features at the mention of Ontari as the girl had not been part of the message and she had not expected the return of the nightblood. That she seemed to have arrived together with Marie, if the man’s words were to be believed, now was only more puzzling. She dismissed the young warrior with her thanks after the man had also told them to having seen the commander’s symbol tattooed on the girl’s neck.

“Maybe she was just frightened?” Anya hypothesized “Who knows what Nia has done to her…” the general’s voice had taken on an angry note as it trailed off.

“I will speak with Ontari first” Lexa proclaimed. She did believe the patrol’s words and her foreboding was telling her to be careful, her instincts had served her well before.

Anya nodded, she would accompany the younger woman and it was obvious that Gustus wished to do the same. Lexa send Titus to the novitiates, if the girls’ return was a trap from Nia, anything was possible from now on.

Lexa felt the thoughts whirl around in her mind frantically. She had come to terms with the fact their Marie had been lost and killed by Nia, hearing now that she was alive, was confusing everything she thought to know about the Ice queen.

 

 

Chapter 154

Ontari looked up from the bench she was sitting on and instantly stood up when she finally heard the resonating sounds of footsteps indicating that someone was moving through the halls of the dungeons. She had no idea of how long ago they had been brought into the dungeons, but the wait had seemed endless to her. She stood up quickly and strode over to the bars separating the cell from the hall. She judged that if she made a grab for the commander or the general, once they passed her, she could at least stop them to try to talk to them.

She was surprised when the commander, accompanied by her general and her bodyguard stopped in front of her cell. Ontari frowned slightly, had the commander already decided to execute her?

Ontari met the commander’s green eyes stare as calm as possible, she was thrown off slightly by the fact that the woman was not rushing to her second immediately.

“Why have you left Polis?” the commander asked.

There was nothing Ontari could read out of the other woman’s expression, even her voice gave nothing away. The general and her bodyguard were a different matter altogether, both stared at her in a clear mixture of distrust and anger.

“To search for Marie” Ontari answered honestly. It would be senseless to try to lie now and she hoped that being honest would at least slightly redeem herself in the eye of the commander. She had to recognize that the Trikru woman was a different kind of leader and a greater leader than queen Nia would ever be. While Nia reigned her people by fear and pure force, Lexa was loved by her people, which made them all more loyal and compliant. She had previously thought to thrive to become a leader like Nia had taught her to, but she had seen the errors within the queen’s mind and she knew there was still a lot she could learn from the current commander.

Lexa looked at the younger girl in question. She had not detected any dishonesty within her dark eyes, it was obvious that Ontari was purposefully keeping her expression open and easy to read, which told her that the younger nightblood wanted to be believed and she had also not detected any malice within her.

“Nia only had sent you Marie’s hair and nothing more” Ontari quickly explained “I know how she operates. And I have seen that before. She sometimes keeps those she regards as promising and you were just to believe that Marie is dead. I did not want to believe that she is…”

A conflict seemed to flash over the nightblood features and Lexa thought that she might have revealed more about her true feeling than she had wanted to. But she nodded with a cautious expression, Clarke had voiced exactly that thought very tentatively once as well before Lexa had convinced her that believing into such a thing was foolish and would only increase their grief into a prolonged time.

Anya had already turned from the nightblood and wanted to continue to see Marie, now that they had heard two times that it was indeed Marie, she needed to see the girl for herself.

Ontari quickly called out to her to wait and she held her head up and did not falter under her piercing glare and murderous expression.

Urgency was colouring her voice now “You need to know something before you go and see her” she said looking back and forth between the commander and general “She still has at least two blades hidden on her person and she is not the girl anymore which you knew”.

“Of course, she is not” Anya seethed through clenched teeth. She had already seen the effects torture could have on the mind of warriors and she hoped that Marie would recover. She hoped that the girl was still recognizable somewhat to them.

“I did not mean because of torture or at least not only” Ontari tried to explain. She had no idea how Marie had lost her memory before she was brought to Nia by Echo. “Marie has no memory of anything before she was brought to Nia” she added, her voice tainted with regret. She had tried to get the girl to remember things, but it had not helped.

Lexa’s green eyes widened and she did not wish to believe the girl’s words. She had already been confused why they should be wary of weapons Marie might have hidden. Anya’s features clearly showed her disbelief as well. “She lost her memory?” she questioned voice sounding distorted slightly.

Ontari nodded “She did not recognize me at all. She had no knowledge of having seen me before. Nia used that to her own advantage…” her voice trailed off again and she glanced away.

Lexa nodded, there was no reason for her to doubt the nightbloods words. She motioned a guard over “Bring her back into the room she occupied before” she ordered and turned back to Ontari “You are not going to try anything, are you?”

Ontari shook her head with a slight frown. She had not expected the commander to believe her words this easily, but she was relieved nevertheless. She wanted to remain within the capitol and she highly doubted that Nia would continue to rule over Azgeda for long. The streets of the capitol had already been filled with warriors of different clans, it was obvious that the coalition was preparing for a war against Ice Nation and even though she believed that the Azgeda army was strong, it would still not manage to siege against all clans combined. She had always believed to be raised with honour and had been shown that to be largely untrue. If she was to become commander, Ontari wished to have earned the title, the people would never respect her otherwise.

Lexa watched the nightblood girl being led away in silence. Her thoughts were running wild within her minds. If Marie had truly lost all collection of who she was and been brought to Nia in such a state, the girl must have been utterly defenceless against anything the queen wanted to make her believe. She knew of Marie’s inherit trust within people and the queen was not dim-witted, she would have known how to gain the girl’s trust and mould her into whatever pleased her.

Anya and Gustus both were obviously worried. It must have dawned on them why Ontari had tried to warn them in the first place. What Nia truly wished was for Lexa to fall, so that must have been Marie’s orders.

“She needs to be searched before anyone gets near her” Lexa gave word to what they all now knew. They would need to be cautious around Marie. Lexa even slightly feared being confronted with the girl now. All of them remembered the soft and gentle girl Marie had been and she would have been changed completely.

Clarke entered the halls of the dungeons in this very moment. She had heard of the location of the commander and why the woman was down here and she wanted to see if the rumours were true. She had shared Lexa’s grief and she would gladly share her joy as well.

Lexa looked at the blonde healer with a slightly downcast expression which immediately worried Clarke. She would have expected both women to be happy about the news that Marie was indeed not dead, which she had hoped all along.

Clarke listened to what the others had already learned with a frown “She has suffered from amnesia?” she questioned.

Anya sneered slightly “At least, Ontari claimed that” the general clearly did not wish to believe the girl’s words.

“Let me speak with her first” Clarke said “And I need to examine her, maybe there is an external cause for her memory loss or something I could do. We had some amnesia cases on the Ark.” Clarke did not tell them right away that most of those cases had never regained their memory, she doubted that it would be welcome right now.

“And if I am not directly recognizable as the commander?” Lexa mused thoughtfully. It would be the easiest way to find out if Marie truly had not recollection of her memories. Gustus’ expression clearly said that he was not pleased at all with that plan.

“Nia could have described you to her” Anya countered with a frown. She agreed with Lexa that it would certainly help to determine the girl’s situation but it was risky as well.

But Lexa had already made up her mind. She would join Clarke in almost the same disguise she had used before in TonDC. If Marie had memories of her time on earth, she would surely recognize Lexa at once. But if the girl did not recognize her at all and was proving to be dangerous to Clarke, Lexa could at least protect the blonde healer and prevent Marie from doing something she would later regret.

 

Marie waited anxiously in the silence of her cell. She had been no match in strength to the grown warrior that had dragged her along and she knew that she would need to use the hidden daggers to take out the commander and she would not get a chance to face her, if she killed a guard beforehand. Nia had been very clear that she would probably only have one go on assassinating the commander, so if she failed there would be no second chances.

She looked up when she finally heard someone walking through the hall. The other cells in this part of the dungeons were completely empty, so it must be someone approaching. Would it be the commander?

She had no idea who the two women were which neared her cell.

“You need to undress” a brunette young woman ordered.

Marie stared at her in silence. Something about the woman rang something within her mind, she could have sworn to have seen those eyes already and to have heard the voice as well.

“You need to undress” the brunette repeated “So that the healer can take a look at you…” she reasoned and when Marie still hesitated she added “…before you can meet the commander”.

Marie continued to scrutinize the brunette woman for a moment, but she did begin to undress. With a sinking heart she noticed a fresh pile of clothes within the woman’s arms. Marie knew that she would be able to undress and redress without the blades being detected, but she would not be able to transfer them to other clothes. She had believed into the queen’s predictions of what would happen once they entered the capitol and the tower, but now nothing was as she has told her and Marie did not know what to do now.

The brunette woman was still watching her and Marie kept her attention on her as well. The woman was of average size and had long brunette hair, which was partly covered by a shawl. Her clothes were simple and that of a handmaid. Her voice had sounded soft and Marie was captivated by her green eyes. She itched to ask her if they had already met, but she refrained when she noticed the blonde healer stepping into the cell behind the brunette.

Marie had finally undressed after long moments and Clarke had to bite her lips against the sting of tears in her eyes, Lexa did not seem to fare much better.

Marie’s face and body had changed drastically. The girl seemed to have grown a bit, but she must have lost some weight. She seemed to consist mostly of a few very well-defined muscles and still looked famished slightly. Her face had lost its roundness and her features had become sharp. The girl’s grey eyes had lost their shine and looked dull, the only things which were easily detectable were anger, distrust and fear. The girl seemed to be nothing more than a shadow of her former self.

Lexa gasped aloud when Clarke asked Marie to let her inspect her backside. The tattoo which had so carefully and artfully been sketched into the girl’s skin was disfigured by a thick layer of scars in various places on her back and she could almost count all of her vertebras through her skin.

But there were not just scars on the girl’s back, her thighs were littered by scars and even her chest now clearly showed scarring. Lexa itched to envelop the girl within her arms and shield her from the pain.

Clarke looked at the girl’s body in utter silence, but the horror was clear within her blue eyes.

Lexa busied herself with pouring a cup of water for the girl. She needed to do something else. She felt the pressing need to gather her forces and immediately march against the Ice queen and she doubted Anya would react any differently.

She felt Marie’s gaze follow her the whole time and Lexa felt hope grow slightly that Marie still remembered at least a little. The girl had not presented herself as an immediate threat, but that would certainly change if she identified herself. The way Marie carried herself now reminded Lexa a lot of the first few meetings with Ontari. Both of them had showed stoicism and strength. The way Marie now jutted out her chin defiantly under their probing gazes almost the exact same as well. But Lexa was sure that Marie’s calm and angry façade would fade soon, it was obvious already that the girl was rattled.

Lexa hoped almost desperately that there would be a way for Marie to regain her memories. They gone through so many extremes already with the girl, that it would be impossible to rebuilt their relationship just like that. Marie seemed totally changed, so there was no way of telling, if the girl would even reconnect with her and Anya without her previous experiences at all.

There was not much Clarke could actually do right now for Marie, most of her wounds had already scarred over and only a few remained tender and still healing, which could benefit from a poultice to be applied to them and to quicken the healing and lessen the scarring. Clarke tried to hold her hands as stable and calm as possible as she applied the substance to Marie’s back. The girl was shaking beneath her fingers and it was obvious that being touched was nothing she enjoyed any longer, little flinches were tried to be reigned in with a clenched jaw and Marie had closed her eyes tightly as well now, standing with her hands fisted together.

Marie did flinch visibly when Clarke touched her forehead to feel for a fever, but her grey eyes were still hard and glittering angrily back at the blonde healer.

Lexa offered the cup with water to the girl mutely and Marie seemed to look at the water for long moments before she cautiously took the cup from her hands, carefully avoiding their fingers to touch even slightly.

“Can I dress again?” Marie finally asked, or rather sneered. It was obvious how uncomfortable being naked in front of the two women was to the girl.

Clarke nodded, but she handed over the pile of fresh clothes, while Lexa already had bent down and retrieved the clothes in which Marie had been dressed before.

Marie’s grey eyes were hefted onto the old clothes and she bit her lips, but she took the offered pile after another moment of hesitation, again carefully avoiding any physical contact with Clarke’s fingers.

Marie breathed a sigh of relieve at being dressed again. Being naked meant being vulnerable. She shuddered visibly as she remembered, how the queen had ordered her to strip as well, she had not liked being naked in front of her, exposed to her probing steely eyes.

Lexa motioned Clarke over to the door. She wanted to leave the cell again, seeing Marie physically and knowing that they had not truly gotten the girl back, was unsettling and she needed to think about how to proceed.

Marie’s gaze followed the brunette woman the whole way and she still could not quite shake the feeling from her mind, that she had already seen this woman before. She would have liked to ask her, if they had known each other, but they had not asked her any questions and she would have given away the fact, that she was lacking her memories by asking, something the queen had explicitly told her not to do.

So, Marie kept her lips sealed together and only watched the brunette leave in silence. She did not understand in the slightest, why she suddenly felt a flash of loneliness and sadness.

Lexa did not say a single word as she preceded Clarke through the halls of the dungeons. Gustus and Anya were both impatiently waiting for their return.

The commander had been sure to have kept her emotions in check, but when Clarke placed a supportive hand on her back, offering her silent compassion, she knew that her features had not been as tightly controlled as she thought.

“She did not recognize me” Lexa voiced in a frustrated sigh, which had already been obvious to her general and Gustus without the need for actual words.

Gustus’ face clearly broadcasted his own sadness at the actual prove of which they had been told.

Anya gnashed her teeth together and her shoulders were hunched slightly. Her brown eyes were hard, although her voice still shook noticeably “I still need to see her”.

It was obvious that the older woman expected Lexa to deny her, but the commander only nodded, as she had anticipated that already. They had removed all weapons from Marie, so there would not be much the girl could do anyway.

Anya quickly strode through the halls, the heels of her boots clicking loudly against the floor and broadcasting her arrival to Marie long before she could actually see anyone approaching.

Marie looked up sharply, when she heard someone returning to her cell. She had no idea what would be happening now and not knowing made her anxious. The queen had laid out her plan of action so carefully and without it, she felt confused and helpless.

Something seemed to quiet within her mind, when her grey eyes connected with the brown ones of the woman, who now stood in front of the bars. Marie creased her brow in confusion, she had felt the same, only slightly lesser, with the brunette, who had been here before with the healer. Could it be possible that she truly did know both of them? She could have screamed out of frustration with herself, she had tried so hard already to try to force her mind to remember, but nothing had worked. Feeling this strange sort of echo within her mind, frustrated Marie even more.

Anya stood facing Marie in shocked silence. She had expected for the girl to look different, but looking at her now, was like a punch to her stomach. The girl looked like a total stranger now.

They stared at each other for long silent moments. Suddenly the order to “hide” resonated back through Marie’s mind.

Marie frowned “You ordered me to hide…?” she voiced her turmoiled thoughts tentatively.

Anya’s eyes widened at the girl’s words, which had been barely loud enough to understand. “I did” she agreed cautiously. Hope was already taking root within her mind. It was obvious that Marie was not remembering everything, but was it not a good thing, that she seemed to remember her somehow?

Hearing the woman’s voice again made other little snippets flash up within her mind and Marie closed her eyes against the onslaught, gasping for breath, as memories flooded her mind.

“Anya…?” Marie echoed with a strongly shaking voice.

Anya looked alarmed at the girl. She had gone pale all of a sudden and seemed to be swaying on her feet. The general barely managed to pry the door open and catch the girl as she lost consciousness before she could fall to the floor.

Anya enveloped the girl within her arms, running her hands over her hair and squeezing her slightly, as her eyes filled with sudden tears. Her heart was beating faster and she felt relieve course through her veins. Marie was alive and she was starting to remember.

 

 

Chapter 155

Lexa had left the dungeons, closely followed by Clarke and Gustus, as soon as Anya had been out of sight.

The commander tasked different warriors with summoning Titus back to the throne room, bringing Ontari there as well and increasing the guard around the novitiates. They needed to deal with the repercussions of what had transpired immediately, rumours would already be spreading widely through the capitol, undoubtedly many people would have recognized Marie and Ontari.

Ice Nation had officially been denounced from the coalition which put Ontari’s status as a novitiate into doubt. Should a nightblood from a hostile clan be allowed to participate in the next conclave and potentially rise as the next commander? Decisions needed to be made together with the flamekeeper or Lexa would at least be willing to listen to his opinion on the matter before she made the decision.

She doubted that Nia would have send more assassins simultaneously, the queen seemed to be running out of options and ideas. She was probably getting desperate. The closed trade routes would be affecting the general population already, something Lexa had detested to order, but she knew that it needed to be done. Nevertheless, she would not take any chances with the wellbeing of her novitiates and increasing the security was simply a preventive move.

Her mind was invaded by flashes of Marie’s scarred back and the emptiness of her grey eyes and Lexa forcefully had to focus herself on the matters at hand. There was nothing she could do to help the girl anyway at the moment. Her thoughts halted, was there even anything to be done to aid the girl in her recovery? She did not know people personally who had lost their memory. Lexa turned to Clarke, as they walked towards the throne room. Silence had hung between them as all three of them were lost to their own thoughts.

“Is it possible for Marie to regain her memories?” Lexa asked the blonde healer with a slight hopeful gleam to her green eyes. Her heart sank slightly at the expression on the other woman’s face.

Clarke frowned and she chose her words carefully “I do not know, Lexa. I know of patients my mum treated with memory loss, but they regained their memories after a very short amount of time. Usually only a few days. But it has been months now…” The blonde’s voice trailed off helplessly “…I guess it is unlikely. But she was brought back into an environment which will offer triggers to her. So, maybe. I will try to get in touch with my mum and asks for her opinion. Maybe she can even come here and take a look at Marie” Clarke offered at last with an encouraging smile. The blonde did not want to give up hope already. Marie had recovered from worse before, so with this particular child anything could be possible.

Gustus listened to Clarke’s explanation carefully. He desperately hoped that the girl would recover. He knew how important the child was to Lexa and Anya, he himself had been had mourned her loss greatly. The girl’s chirpiness, as annoying as he had found it in the beginning, had made her absence ring ever so silent.

Lexa nodded with a disheartened sigh. She had no idea if Clarke’s mother could even offer any assistance at all and she did not like the woman’s company, so inviting her into the capitol was nothing she desired, but even the off chance that the doctor might be able to help Marie was enough to outweigh her own annoyance.

“I will try to get into contact with her right away” Clarke offered, putting her hand on Lexa’s upper arm and squeezing gently.

Gustus averted his eyes in courtesy at the intimate gesture. He had already known that both women had begun to care for each other deeply. He was grateful for the blonde woman’s company, it had held Lexa upright and able to fulfil her duties, while Anya had given into her grieve stricken rage.

The commander nodded mutely and watched Clarke leave in silence. The blonde’s presence would not be needed for the discussion that needed to take place now.

Ontari had already been brought into the throne room, when Lexa swept inside, closely followed by Gustus.

The commander thought to spot genuine relieve minutely wash over the nightbloods face at her arrival and she internally wondered what had been the cause of the relieve, she would have expected the girl to be disappointed that she had not been at least wounded.

Lexa sat down on her throne, crossing her legs over each other casually, and stared down at the dark-haired girl probingly, with a raised brow she remarked “You seem relieved”.

Ontari nodded mutely and when silence stretched between them, with Lexa still looking at the girl questioningly, she added “Marie would have lost her head, if she had managed to assassinate you. Even if she survived, she would not be able to live with herself, when she remembers”.

Lexa’s eyebrow rose even higher at her words. It had been apparent already that Ontari genuinely cared for Marie, but the connection must be strong for such a sentiment. “Did you know that Azgeda is no longer part of the coalition?” she asked after a heavy moment of silence.

Ontari seemed to take a deep breath before she answered. “Not before we crossed the border to Trikru lands” she admitted “I would still have brought her back regardless if I had known or not.”

“You are aware of how precarious your status as a novitiate is right now?” Lexa inquired, voice low and cutting.

Ontari gulped visibly before she straightened herself and nodded mutely, jutting her chin out slightly. She had spoken true before, she would still bring Marie back to Polis, even if she would now suffer the consequences.

Titus’ arrival in the throne room stopped Lexa from saying anything else. The flamekeeper frowned at the commander, who had not changed back into the clothes signifying her status. The man’s dark eyes narrowed at the nightblood girl in clear distrust, before Lexa called his attention.

“It is indeed Marie, who had been brought into the dungeons” she confirmed to her former teacher “But she has no memory any longer”.

The man’s eyes widened at the implication of her words.

Lexa addressed Ontari again “What has Nia ordered Marie to do specifically?”

Ontari raised a brow as if to ask if the question was meant seriously and her tone was almost bored as she answered “Assassinate you, what else?”

Titus’ angry gaze returned to the nightblood for her impertinence.

“Has Marie told you what she does remember?” Lexa asked, ignoring both the girl’s cheek and Titus’ reaction to it.

Ontari sighed slightly “She remembered waking up with a bleeding wound, feeling nauseous. She stumbled through the woods. She said that she heard a voice repeating the order to hide. Apparently, she has heard the general calling out to her, but did not recognize her own name and hide from her. Her memories are hazy before Echo found her and brought her to the queen”.

Lexa clenched her jaw, but nodded in silence. Anya would probably not fare so well, when she heard that Marie had in fact truly tried to hide from her. She could only try to image how afraid the child must have been in her confused state. “And how did the queen convince Marie to assassinate me?” Lexa asked. Even without her memories assassinating someone sounded completely alienated for Marie.

Ontari sneered slightly “The queen can be very…” she searched for words for a moment “…convincing. And Marie was so confused, she would have believed anything. You have seen the signs left behind by the queen’s “care””.

Lexa nodded with a sudden lump lodged within her throat.

“I had tried to convince Marie of a truth beyond the queen’s words” Ontari continued, without being prompted to “But she had been under the queen’s influence for too long already. I thought I had gotten her trust, when the …” she broke off abruptly.

Lexa narrowed her eyes slightly at the nightblood. It was uncharacteristic of the girl to offer information without being asked like that, so whatever she wanted to tell them, must weigh heavily on her. She silenced Titus with a quick gesture, mutely waiting for Ontari to gather her thoughts. The inner turmoil was apparent on Ontari’s face and her dark eyes clearly showed regret and even a hint of horror at what she had witnessed.

“The queen suddenly kept on keeping Marie in her quarters overnight, on her own” the girl’s voice suddenly had a far-away quality to it and her eyes were solely fixed on Lexa “She had handled the torture better than I would have expected. But something changed after the nights. She lost her light…She became silent and jittery. She did not want to be touched at all anymore. She seemed both deathly afraid and dependent of the queen’s attention…I needed to get her away…” as her voice trailed off, her dark eyes looked suspiciously moist.

Lexa felt bile rise in her throat as she processed the nightblood’s words. Silence fell between them momentarily and even Titus looked slightly shocked.

The commander regarded the nightblood in silence. It was obvious how upsetting the whole ordeal had been for her and Lexa believed in her honesty that she simply had wished to remove Marie from the queen’s influence. It was rather surprising to her what a great impact the girls’ friendship had obviously made on Ontari. She doubted that the Ice Nation nightblood would have been susceptible at all to the differences between herself as the commander and what Nia had made her out to be without Marie.

Lexa was internally grateful that the nightblood had been there with Marie, when none of them could have been. She hoped that Ontari had at least slightly helped their second, it was obvious she had tried. Who knew if Nia would have ever sent Marie from her side otherwise? Lexa was internally torn between the need to scream at the injustice at what had been done to Marie, to cry at the fact hat Anya and her had been unable to protect the sweet and kind girl and the burning desire to see justices carried out on Marie’s behalf.

Titus had been silent for a few moments, while Lexa was lost in thought and Ontari tried to pull herself back together, banning all the memories from her mind and steeling herself again. The nightblood’s face was closed off, when Titus spoke and broke the silence.

“Heda, we cannot allow an Ice Nation nightblood the possibility to become commander” the flamekeeper addressed Lexa. There seemed to be a subtle hint of regret and hesitancy within the man’s voice.

Lexa stared her former teacher down at his audacity to include himself in his words, it would be her who made a decision and not him. It was obvious the man was subtly trying to press her to execute the Ice Nation nightblood. One glance at Ontari’s proud gaze, barely hiding the resignation, was enough for Lexa to recognize that the girl had at least expected this outcome at a possibility and she had still been willing to come to Polis and warn them of Marie’s orders from the queen.

Lexa thought for a few moments in silence of alternatives to just execute Ontari, something she was trying to work around. She did not look at Titus but solely at the nightblood, when she spoke again “The flamekeeper has a valid point” she said calmly and Ontari seemed to pale the slightest bit, her dark eyes widening. “However, I do not wish to execute you” Lexa continued and silenced Titus with a gesture when the man made to speak again. “You brought Marie back to me and Anya, not regarding the consequences your return would be having for yourself or rather accepting them for her good” Lexa’s voice was tinted with gratefulness and Ontari subtly inclined her head in agreement. “You have not yet been introduced completely as a novitiate” she explained and realization dawned on Titus’ face, while Ontari simply looked confused. “A novitiate usually swears fealty to the current commander, swearing not to harm their life” Lexa explained calmly, watching the nightblood carefully “I have not let you pledge yourself to me with honour yet, because I would not have believed in your word before…”

“So, I would have still been able to participate in the conclave, if I had killed you myself?” Ontari asked, interrupting the commander with a frown.

Lexa’s lips thinned visibly but she nodded in silent confirmation.

“And you would accept a pledge of me now?” Ontari’s voice showed her confusion and surprise at the possibility.

Lexa nodded again mutely, prompting a contradicting snort from Titus.

Ontari seemed to think of her options for a moment, before she nodded. Her head was swimming slightly with the new information. She had truly not been aware of the fact that she could have assassinate Lexa and take her place legally. A small voice within her mind interjected that she did not wish to do so anymore anyway.

“Titus will instruct you on the specifics” Lexa accepted the girl’s nod as silent approval. The flamekeeper visibly clenched his jaw, but he inclined his head, he knew better than to try to change her mind right now. “You will need to pledge yourself to me in front of the ambassadors of the clans” the commander added and after Ontari nodded again, she motioned Titus to escort Ontari back to her room and begin instructing her right away.

 

Clarke had just finished talking with her mother briefly using one of their radios, when she heard footsteps in the hall in front of the commander’s quarters. She had expected Lexa’s return, but when the footsteps stopped, she stood from the commander’s bed and looked out into the halls. Her brows scrunched up slightly when she noticed Anya carrying Marie into her own quarters.

“Has she tried to attack you?” Clarke hurried over to the older woman and worriedly scanned Marie’s face for the signs of new wounds.

Anya shook her head with a frown and a deadly glare directed at the blonde healer. She would have been able to protect herself from an attack from Marie, without seriously hurting the child.

Clarke opened the doors to Anya’s quarters and followed the general inside, as she laid Marie on the single remaining bed, carefully pulling furs over her body to keep her warm.

“What happened then?” Clarke wanted to know impatiently. Her mother had agreed to come to Polis and try to figure out a way to help Marie, but she would need until the next day. It was starting to turn dark and they did not wish to use the rover at night. Marie was not in the danger of dying, so Clarke had agreed that waiting for the next morning was the best course of action.

Anya gently stroked over Marie’s blonde hair, which was considerably shorter and kept on falling into her sleeping features. “She remembered my name” Anya said, awe obvious within the slight shaking of her voice.

Clarke’s blue eyes widened slightly “She did?” she automatically asked. She knew that it would be a good sign, if the girl started to remember some things. It was unlikely for her to remember everything at once, it might take Marie several weeks or months to regain her full memory, if she ever did that was. Abby had not sounded too hopeful of the chances of Marie’s recovery over the radio, but if her memories were already starting to return, that would probably change the whole perspective.

“She must have passed out from sensory overload then” Clarke mused under her breath.

The general looked at the healer with a frown, she had not understood at all what the younger woman meant with her mumbling.

“Sorry” Clarke said and explained quickly “I assume that some memories must have come back to her at once. Her mind was probably not able to cope with that, so it shut down instead as a way to deal with it.”

Anya nodded sharply, obviously unwilling to tear her eyes from Marie’s face for longer than a few seconds.

“I am assuming, you plan to stay with her until she wakes?” Clarke checked without any judgement in her voice.

Another nod from the older woman was her only answer and Clarke left Anya with a tentative squeeze to the woman’s shoulder. Anya looked up sharply at the unexpected touch but did not say anything before Clarke swept from the room.

Anya listened to her retreating footsteps in tense silence. She barely allowed herself to blink. She had not yet truly understood or accepted that Marie was truly not dead and the irrational fear had taken root in her mind, that the girl could be gone if she closed her eyes. As if Marie’s presence was simply a vicious trick of her mind.

She was oddly grateful that the girl’s face was still free of scars. Marie’s face looked sharper, as if her cheeks had sunken and the bones stood out more starkly under her skin. Anya hoped that she would recover after a few weeks of more nourishing food, the girl’s whole body had felt frail and thin, although her muscles had clearly increased.

When she stroked over Marie’s blonde hair again, Anya frowned slightly, even the child’s hair felt not smooth anymore.

She took a step back from the bed and sat down on a chair next to it. Anya carefully took one of the girl’s hands within her own, she simply needed to keep contact with her at the moment. She hoped that it would calm Marie, once she woke as well. The girl’s fingers were now clearly roughened by callouses and little scars which had not yet formed before they had set out to hunt.

“I will not fail you again, my little star” Anya promised Marie into the silence of the room and gave her fingers a gentle squeeze.

 

 

 

Chapter 156

Lexa sat on her throne, feeling more tired than ever. Titus had escorted Ontari out of the throne room, just as she had instructed and Gustus had followed her plea to be left alone.

She had never felt this small while sitting on her throne, she had face covered by her hands, a sigh on her lips and her thoughts going wild in her head. Lexa still felt bile burning in her throat, but she felt too exhausted to move even an inch.

She would be the one to kill Nia with her own bare hands for what she had done to their second. Marie had still been such an utterly innocent and pure girl and Lexa direly hoped that the child would be strong enough to cope with what had happened to her.

Goosebumps raised on her arms as she imagined how Marie must have felt without anyone by her side to truly help her. She clenched her jaw at the realization that although the girl may have physically been returned to them, as long as she did not remember who they had been to her previously, she would not be able to be there for her.

The commander had been slightly surprised that Titus had not brought up the fact that Marie could very well still be a danger to her and should not be allowed to remain within the walls of the tower in her current state. Lexa wished to be by the girl’s side but that would be next to impossible if Marie truly would try to kill her if she recognized her as the commander.

Lexa straightened up in her throne, trying to pull forth the strength of the commander from within herself, when she heard someone approaching the throne room. She had asked Gustus for a few moments of solitude but she quickly recognized the footfalls to belong to Clarke and smiled slightly when the blonde simply demanded to be let inside.

She could hear Gustus grumble in annoyance, but even the burly man already knew that Clarke would not be denied anything and let her pass without much of an argument.

Clarke noticed immediately how strained Lexa’s smile was and a deep sadness seemed to linger in her green eyes. “Anya said that Marie remembered her name, Lexa” the blonde addressed the commander in a soft tone, trying to lighten her obviously heavy mood.

Lexa looked up at Clarke with a slightly surprised expression, but she felt relieve course through her mind. “How much does she remember?” she asked quickly, a part of her wished desperately for Marie to remember herself as well.

Clarke shook her head “I do not know. Marie is asleep. Anya said that she lost consciousness directly after remembering her name. Her brain must have been overflooded with memories, I guess. My mother will make her way to Polis tomorrow, I hope that she will know more.”

Lexa nodded and a lump formed in the back of her throat again, the words nearly stuck in her throat as she recalled what Ontari had just told them.

Clarke had paled visibly and her blue eyes were widened with horror “How can someone hurt a little girl like this?” the healer’s voice shook strongly and wavered.

Lexa shook her head, lips thinning in sudden anger and following an impulse, she wept from her throne and crashed her balled up fists into the wall behind her throne.

“Lexa!” Clarke’s voice was slightly shrill, but she visibly hesitated before she laid her hand on the commander’s elbow. She could understand why the brunette woman was so angry, hearing that the girl you regarded as a daughter of sorts had been violated in such a way would be enough to make the calmest person snap. Clarke shuddered slightly when she thought about how Anya would react, once she heard about it as well.

The sharp pain in her knuckles diverted Lexa’s burning anger at least somewhat. Dark blood already flowed over her fingers, where the skin over her knuckles had burst from the impact. She took a few deep breaths, before she turned her eyes back to Clarke.

The blonde immediately took the commander’s hands and inspected her knuckles, tutting under her breath in disapproval. “We need to clean those” Clarke said in a worried voice. The wounds may be shallow but even shallow wounds could get infected.

Lexa only begrudgingly followed Clarke from the throne room into her own quarters, where the blonde kept her equipment she needed in her function as a healer.

Lexa visibly faltered in front of the doors of Anya’s quarters, knowing that Marie was beneath this very door now. Only Clarke’s hand pushing gently against her back and urging her forward to her own quarters kept the commander walking finally.

“If Marie is starting to remember Anya, she should probably be the only one to stay with her right away. I hope that my mother will be able to say how we can help her best” Clarke addressed the obviously torn young leader in a soft tone. She had no idea if exposing Marie to too much triggers at once might even be counterproductive. She guessed that it would be the better strategy to let the memories Marie must have regained with Anya settle in her mind first and allow her time to rest. She could only imagine how hard the upcoming weeks must be for the girl. None of them knew what exactly Marie had lived through at the hands of the Azgeda queen, but her body was marred by enough scars which clearly indicated just how traumatised the girl would probably be already and adding the strain of trying to regain your own identity would make it so much harder.

Lexa’s shoulders sagged visibly, but she nodded in acceptance. The commander watched how Risha’s nose twitched when she stepped closer to the fireplace, where the young wolf had previously been sleeping.

Risha let out a low whining sound at the smell which reminded her of her human. Lexa smiled slightly at the young wolf and caressed her muzzle “Marie is back with us, Risha” she reassured the wolf, although she knew that the wolf probably would not understand her words.

Clarke could understand that the situation would be heavy on Lexa and Anya. They had accepted Marie’s seemingly death, to now get the girl back. But they had only gotten her back physically and no one could guarantee that the child would ever be the same again. To top it all off there was a war looming in their immediate future. Once everything was in place the commander would march her army against the Ice Nation and with what they now knew, Clarke was sure without the smallest sliver of doubt that Lexa and Anya would not rest before Nia had been killed.

Clarke had collected a bowl with clean water from the bathroom and motioned the commander over with a washcloth in her hand.

Lexa rolled her eyes slightly “Those are merely scratches, Clarke. There is no need to fuss over them” but she still subjected herself to the healer’s caring touch willingly.

Clarke simply tutted at the older girl in disagreement “Would it not be ironic if the all-mighty commander died of something as trivial as an infection due to uncared for scratches?” slight sarcasm was apparent within her voice.

Lexa snorted under her breath but did not say anything. She knew that Clarke tried to lighten her mood with her light banter and she was internally grateful to the blonde girl for that.

“We will manage to get through everything together, Lexa” Clarke assured the commander with conviction burning in her blue eyes, their foreheads rested together gently and Lexa nodded with a smile ghosting at the corners of her mouth, letting herself fall into the blonde’s arms, surrendering her strength for once.

 

Anya had heard the commander and Clarke pass by her door, but she stayed by Marie’s bedside and waited in silence for the girl to finally wake.

It seemed to take forever before Marie began to stir beneath the furs. Anya kept one of the girl’s hands between her own, gently caressing the girl’s fingers.

When Marie finally began to stir, Anya sat up straighter again. She had started to nod off as the hours passed with nothing else to do then watch Marie’s chest rise and fall and listen to her soft breathing.

The moment Marie woke was apparent by the fact that her whole body seemed to freeze overcome by encompassing tenseness.

Anya squeezed the girl’s fingers in what she hoped to be a calming gesture, whispering soothing words to the child. Alarmingly her attempts to calm Marie, had the opposite effect.

Anya let go of the girl’s fingers and leaned away from the bed instead, trying to grant the girl some space, she still kept her voice even and soothing “Marie, open your eyes. You are safe”.

Marie snatched her hand back immediately, scooting upright in the same moment as away from the woman looming next to her bed. She tried to remember frantically, how she had ended up within a bed. She could not remember falling asleep and it took her a few moments to recall what had happened before she lost consciousness. Her breathing was exhilarated and she felt her fingers shaking slightly. 

She shuddered slightly when another memory resurfaced within her mind. The queen had pushed her beyond her physical limits sometimes as well and losing consciousness usually did not have good effects for her.

Marie forcefully banned the memory from her mind, focusing her grey eyes on the woman sitting next to the bed instead. Her brown eyes were filled with a mixture of worry and a relief, a mixture Marie did not understand being possible to exist simultaneously.

“I remember your voice…” Marie finally said, voice slightly forlorn and a frown settled on her face. The voice of the woman undoubtedly matched with the voice that had kept on resonating through her mind for the last months, urging her to hide after she had woken disoriented and in pain. The woman’s name had flashed up in her mind suddenly when she had heard her voice again, but beside her name and voice and the distinct feeling that she knew the woman very well, there was nothing else yet. “…and your name” Marie added after sorting through her confusing thoughts. “But nothing more” the distress she felt coursing through her mind was mirrored on Anya’s face quiet clearly.

Anya had waited in silence for Marie to state what she wanted and felt her heart sink slightly at the realisation of just how much was still missing from the girl’s memories. She did not know of how much she should be telling her charge either, or if Marie would even be willing to believe in her words. She swallowed forcefully and put a slight smile on her features “We will be here to help you, Marie” Anya tried to reassure the girl forcing conviction into her voice.

Marie frowned slightly “We?” she questioned. Her thoughts instantly returned to the brunette handmaid who had been in her cell before Anya. She just knew that they were familiar.

“Yes” Anya nodded, choosing her next words carefully “What has Nia told you about where you have come from, Marie?”

Marie’s expression which had been reasonably open before the mention of the Ice queen closed off completely in the blink of an eye. The girl’s frame tensed again visibly and she shrunk back against the wall, even further away from Anya.

Anya’s face fell slightly at the girl’s negative reaction to her simple question. How should they be able to help Marie, if the girl was unwilling to talk to them?

Marie watched the woman pinch the bridge of her nose in clear agitation, but she still kept herself pressed against the wall. The queen had told her over and over again that it did not matter the slightest bit who she had been before, but just that she now belonged to the queen irrevocably. The way Anya had spoken the queen’s name clearly conveyed distaste and anger and something else the queen had told her flashed up in her mind. The queen had drilled into her who was close to the commander as preparation for her task.

“You are the Trikru general of the commander, aren’t you?” Marie asked after a few moments of strained silence.

Anya raised a brow in question, but she nodded in silent agreement. She watched her charges reaction carefully at the announcement of her connection to the commander.

Marie’s face scrunched up in visible confusion “Why do I know you then?” her voice had gotten slightly higher with an almost shrill note to it and she felt her breathing quicken again in growing panic. Should she not have known the commander as well if she had obviously been connected somehow to one of her closest generals?

Anya noticed the alarm pass over Marie’s features and after a sigh she decided that it would probably be best to tell the truth to the girl “You are my second, Marie. You became my second in TonDC, after you got separated from the Sky children.” She waited for Marie to show a reaction to her words but beside a frown there was nothing, so she added “But you are also the commander’s second”.

Marie looked away from the general with a deep frown as the woman’s words settled into her mind. It would at least explain why the people around the streets of Polis had reacted so strongly to her, as the commander’s second and second to a high ranking general, she must have been well known in the city. Her mind fell back to the brunette with the green eyes, that seemed to awfully familiar. Maybe the woman was a handmaid to the commander as well and she knew her because of that?

“The brunette handmaid that had been with the healer…” Marie started to ask after long silent moments. The thought of being associated with the commander like that was too confusion to really ponder right now, so she focused on something else instead.

Anya held her breath slightly in anticipation. Could it be that their charge could already remember Lexa as well?

“Do I know her as well?” Marie finally asked when Anya simply waited.

Anya nodded with a slight smile “You do”. It was obvious that the girl had not recognized Lexa as the commander but she must have felt something to ask after her.

“I know that I have seen her eyes somehow before…” Marie stated deep in thought, trying hard to dig through her mind for more specific memories, but coming up with nothing. She remembered that Ontari had tried to tell her things about her past, just after the older girl had arrived in the palace. The dark-haired girl had looked relieved to see her, but Marie had not reacted welcoming to her. She had reported back to the queen immediately that Ontari had tried to tell her things, even before truly listening to them. If she truly was Anya’s second, she should be able to trust the woman. But the hateful words of the queen aimed against anyone associated with Trikru still rang loudly in her mind.

Anya nodded with a slight smile. Maybe Clarke was right and Marie would start to remember with time as she was exposed to people she had known and places she had already been.

“Can I see Ontari?” Marie asked after another few moments.

Anya frowned visibly at her charges request, but after a moment of contemplation she nodded her consent. The Ice Nation nightblood seemed to have genuinely tried to help Marie. It might irk Anya that their charge was now even more deeply connected with Ontari, but if the nightblood could help Marie, that was all that mattered. Ontari’s willingness to bow down before Lexa already showed that her loyalties might have truly changed.

Marie ignored Anya’s offered hand to help her from the bed and climbed down keeping as much physical distance between them as possible.

Anya forcefully kept her face straight at the girl’s open negative reaction, which was so contrasting to the child which had liked nothing better than curling up on the bed or a couch together and read and cuddle during her sleep.

Marie looked around herself subtly when she followed Anya through the halls of the tower. She did not reciprocate the smiles of the guards they passed. Most of them were marked with the tattoos of Trikru. She did not recognize any of them and the halls they passed through did not ring any memories as well.

Anya opened the door to Ontari’s room for Marie and watched the girl enter. She remained standing in the open door indecisively for a few moments watching them reunite. She felt slightly better seeing that Marie’s greeting of Ontari was nothing more than a subtle nod, no smile gracing her lips at all. Ontari looked openly surprised at seeing Marie together with Anya but in contrast to the blonde girl, she did smile at the other girl. 

Anya stepped out of the door, not closing it completely but waiting outside. She should still be able to hear what they would say to each other that way.

“You had wanted to tell me something about my past before” Marie started forgoing a greeting completely “But I did not listen. I want to listen now”.

Anya noted on the way the girl immediately spoke in Trigedasleng, her pronunciation had gotten almost perfectly. The child’s tone was only coloured clearly with urgency and lacked the kindness it had usually always held.

“What do you want to know?” Ontari questioned with slight surprise. She would gladly answer anything at this point.

“Have I really been the commander’s second?” Marie asked immediately.

Anya noticed that the girl had not included herself in the question, so maybe she believed her willingly on that fact.

Ontari nodded “Yes” she agreed audibly. From her position she could clearly see that the door had not been closed totally by Anya and that the general was no doubt trying to listen.

Marie frowned “How have I come to know you then?” she asked next. She had no memory of the older nightblood, but even the queen had said that they had known each other previously.

Ontari smiled slightly and retold Marie how she had been sent by the queen to assassinate the commander and the other nightbloods and had abducted Marie instead and how she had been allowed to stay alive by the commander, how a friendship had grown between them.

Marie listened to the older girl’s words carefully. “And the commander allowed you to stay now as well?” she checked after processing everything for a few moments. The queen had painted the image of a ruthless and bloodthirsty woman as the commander in her mind, lusting after the blood of Azgeda. So, why should the commander allow an Ice Nation nightblood to live?

Ontari nodded again “I will pledge myself to the commander”.

“Pledge?” Marie echoed with a frown “The queen ordered us to take her out. To have you made the next commander”.

Ontari shook her head in the negative “Marie, Lexa kom Trikru is a good commander and I am not ready to be commander yet”.

Marie’s frown deepened, but she remained silent.

“You have been very close to the commander, Marie, and to Anya as well” Ontari added after a moment of silence. If she had the girl’s attention right now she needed to try to tell her as much as possible. Marie still sounded convinced that they should follow the queen’s orders, she needed to discourage her from that plan as soon as possible.

Marie looked at Ontari with questions burning in her eyes, swirled with deep doubt. “I was?” she questioned voice softer again.

Ontari nodded again “I do not know for sure, but you were more a daughter to them, than just their second. You would regret killing either of them once you regain your full memory”.

The intensity of Ontari’s dark eyes was unsettling Marie slightly, there was no doubt she was speaking the truth. So, Marie nodded again with a cautious expression “I hope I will remember soon then…” she said before she turned back to the door.

“I hope so too…” Ontari answered faintly as she watched the blonde girl leave. 

 

 

A slight repetition of a warning. This and several of the next chapters will heavily focus on the sexual abuse Marie has suffered. If this upsets you, I advise not to read them.

 

 

Chapter 157

The night was difficult for Anya and Marie.

It was obvious how unsettled Marie was and Anya was constantly worrying of how she should be treating the girl.

The general highly doubted that Marie would want to share a bed at the moment, the girl shied away from every slight touch. She almost regretted having thrown out the girl’s bed from her quarters a few weeks ago, but at the time she had needed to get rid of it. She also did not wish for the girl to be alone right away, so assigning another room to her was out of question as well.

Marie had followed the woman back through the halls and to the general’s quarters in silence, lost in her own thoughts and Anya did not disturb her charge.

The girl stood in the middle of the room, her grey eyes darting around the room unsurely. With the Ice queen she had at least always known to the point what was expected of her and what consequences she should expect, if she failed to meet those expectations. Now, Marie felt lost and insecure without those clear rules guiding her behaviour.

Would Anya be expecting her to follow the same rules? Marie had no idea and it made her even more jittery.

Anya rummaged through her chest with clothes, she knew that there was nothing left in her quarters which had belonged to Marie, but one of her shirts would clearly do for the night.

Marie looked at the simply dark shirt being handed to her questioningly.

“You can sleep in this tonight” Anya explained “We will see tomorrow if any of your clothes are still around”. The general did not know if Lexa might have kept some of the girl’s clothing, but procuring new clothing would not be too difficult as well.

Marie nodded with a guarded expression and took the shirt. She immediately felt how soft the material of the fabric was. The Ice queen had her usually dressed in rather scratchy clothes which further irritated her wounded skin.

After a moment of silent hesitation Marie undressed in front of the general. If the woman had truly been her first before, she had probably seen her naked already. She still was acutely aware of the woman’s brown eyes following her every move and raking over her revealed skin, before Marie quickly shrugged on the black shirt. Thankfully the shirt was loose on her frame and reached down to her thighs, hiding most of her body beneath.

Anya felt anger course through her veins at the state of Marie’s body, it was littered with scars. Marie had not been conscious of her body anymore before she had been brought to the queen, but it was obvious that she was unsettled at being watched again now.

The general sighed under her breath. It had already turned dark outside and they should try to get some rest soon.

“You can have the bed for the night” Anya offered graciously. The girl’s reaction to simply being watched told her quiet clearly that sharing a bed would probably not go over too well. She took some of the furs from the bed and laid them down on the ground, she had slept on the floor before.

Marie’s grey eyes widened visibly at the offer and she quickly shook her head “The floor is acceptable” she reassured the general. The queen had sometimes allowed her to sleep on the ground next to her bed as well and it had been the better nights, where she did not have to sleep under the same furs with the woman.

Anya frowned, but finally nodded after long moments. If Marie felt better that way, she would go with it for the night. A new bed could be added for Marie the following day.

Marie laid down on the furs on the floor, whole body still rigid and tense in anticipation. It did not seem as if Anya would want her to do anything for her right now, but the queen had not required anything from her in the beginning as well.

Marie fell asleep some time later, she could still feel the general watching over her from the bed.

Anya looked down at the sleeping girl with worried brown eyes. How were they supposed to help Marie, when the girl did not accept them in her vicinity? She hoped that Clarke’s mother would truly have some experience with people who had lost their memory.

Anya had let some of the candles on the table keep on burning, but they had given out a few hours later, so that their quarters fell into total darkness again.

As the darkness swept through the room, Marie’s breathing became laboured. She had woken up from a slight nightmare some time ago. She could hear the other woman’s deep breathing coming from the bed and Anya was obviously still asleep. So, she had fortunately not woken the other woman up, still Marie felt tense and afraid.

Marie did not remember in particular what she had dreamt about, since she had lost her memories, she rarely remembered what she dreamt about at night. But she woke up in a cold sweat, breathing shallowly and feeling haunted.

Marie tried to control her breathing and fall back asleep. As she felt her body relaxing slowly, memories flashed up in her mind. She could swear she felt the queen’s fingers ghosting over her skin again. Her trembling increased and she felt bile rise in her throat.

Marie hurriedly stood up from the furs and stumbled through the dark quarters to the bathroom. On the way she stubbed her toes on the chest standing next to the bed. Marie bit her lips with a hiss, trying to reign in a curse.

Anya woke from the sound of Marie moving around the room. When she heard sounds of Marie retching in the bathroom, she instantly slipped out of bed and walked over to the bathroom, casting worried glances inside. She stopped inside of the door hovering there indecisively.

As soon as Marie noticed Anya’s presence by the door, she straightened up immediately, wiping at her mouth with a shaking hand.

“I will make you a tea to calm your stomach” Anya offered and retreated back into the room. She quickly coaxed the fire back to life and lightened a few candles around the room. The image the girl presented through the still opened door to the bathroom was pathetic. Her skin was pale and glistening with sweat, her eyes looked around the room skittishly as if she was searching for a possible attacker.

Anya sighed under breath. She had felt out of her realm of experience when she had needed to comfort the girl from her nightmares the first few times, but dealing with this version of the child overwhelmed herself even more.

Marie tried to gather her bearings while she heard the general move through the quarters. She needed a few moments until she had been able to stop her limps from shaking and she was internally grateful to the general for leaving her alone for as long as she needed.

Anya smiled slightly at Marie when the girl returned to the main room of her quarters. Marie did not respond to her smile but her eyes seemed to calm slightly.

Marie accepted the cup with the streaming tea with a grateful nod, careful that their fingers did not brush in the slightest. She cautiously peered up at the general, she knew that she had woken the woman and she did not know if she would be punished for that, but she could not detect anger in the other woman’s face.

Marie fiddled with the cup in her hand, looking down at the furs unsurely. She was sure that she would not be able to sleep anymore tonight.

Anya regarded the girl in silence for a moment, she still felt tired but Marie still looked to be way too skittish to sleep now. “Sit down” Anya ordered and motioned to the bed.

Marie visibly tensed at the command, but she complied with it without any hesitation. She could not remember if the general had ever been violent with her or not, so it was probably safer to obey her anyway. She sat down as far from Anya as possible and kept her glance fixed on the cups in her hands.

Anya sighed and went into the bathroom herself. She had no idea how to deal with Marie right now.

Marie remained sitting on the bed and looked behind the retreating general. She felt better now that candles were burning again in the room. She had stopped feeling well in any form of darkness a while ago. She only realized now that Ontari had been careful to always keep some candles burning during the night.

Anya spent long minutes in the bathroom, trying to give Marie and herself even more time apart. It was obvious that the girl did not wish to be seen in her distraught state.

Marie had already downed the complete cup of tea when Anya returned. She was slightly confused why the tea had been made so sweet, clearly an extensive amount of honey had been added to the brew. The queen had rarely allowed her any kind of treats, in fact even normal food had to be earned by excellent behaviour.

“Did I usually had the tea so sweet?” she asked once the general returned to the room.

Anya raised an eyebrow in slight amusement. It had always been difficult to get the girl to drink any kind of tea without a copious amount of honey. She had no idea how a memory loss worked, it was obvious Marie had not lost her ability to speak Trigedasleng. But it seemed that she had forgotten essentially what had made her into a unique character such as her own taste, but had kept her skills. She nodded with a smile ghosting around the corners of her lips “You would only drink tea with honey” the general recalled “When you were sick, there was no arguing with you about drinking a needed tea without an extensive amount of honey”.

Marie snorted slightly under her breath at the information. The woman’s expression seemed honest and Marie could not think of a reason for her to make such a little snippet up, so she believed her word. She felt herself relax slightly in the woman’s presence and gave into the urge to ask more about her past “How have I met you?” she asked voice almost tentative.

Anya sat down on the bed on the other side, respectfully keeping space between them. She kept her tone gentle and expression kind as she recalled to Marie how she had interrogated her in TonDC.

Marie scooted back against the headboard and pulled her legs up, hugging her knees to her chest. She let her chin rest on her knees as she listened to the general’s narration. She tried to remember the things Anya was telling her, but nothing came up in her mind. Nevertheless, she was slightly soothed by the woman’s voice. The queen had never told her any kind of stories, if she spoke to her it was orders or punishments.

Something the queen had drilled into her mind from the beginning on kept on resonating through her mind. Although it sounded as if the general was choosing her words very carefully, it still seemed as if the woman had genuinely cared about her well-being, something the queen had insisted only she did now. Marie had started to believe in the queen’s words, but there was something about Anya that seemed so very different.

Even more confusing to Marie was the fact that the general kept her distance to her. She had tried to keep space between herself and the queen as well, but the queen had never let her have space and either simply reached over or commanded her over. She had always known what the queen expected of her, if she was asked to stay with her during the night. Maybe the general expected her to do the same for her? Maybe the general was actually waiting for exactly that? Maybe she would be punished if she did not offer without being prompted to?

Anya watched the girl’s expression with a worried frown. Marie had looked relaxed during her narration, but something was clearly troubling her now. The girl seemed to have folded in on herself and a shiver was shaking her frame visibly.

“Marie” Anya addressed the girl in a soft tone and pried the now empty cup from her shaking fingers. She ignored the pronounced flinch that caused from Marie. “You are safe now” the general tried to reassure the girl with honest eyes and conviction in her tone.

Marie looked up at the woman with unsure grey eyes, she noticed that Anya had gotten closer to her. Her heart rate picked up noticeably, unsure if the woman truly expected her to do the same the queen had always demanded of her. She was not able to recognize the emotion flickering through the woman’s brown eyes. Could it be impatience?

Taking a deep breath, Marie leaned over and placed her hands on Anya’s flanks.

Anya looked down at the girl with a slight smile, thinking it to be a good step that Marie seemed to want physical closeness now. Her smile froze on her face, when she felt the girl’s hands wander to her thighs, slowly inching closer to her groin. Anya encased the girl’s wrists with her own, pulling her hands away from her body and her voice shook slightly with alarm “What do you think you are doing?”

Marie blinked up at the woman with confusion “Making you feel good?” she answered, intimidated by the woman’s negative reaction. The queen had only been pleased if she was the one to offer and initiate the contact, once she had been taught on what to do. She tried to inch away from Anya instinctively, but the woman still kept a firm hold on her wrists.

“Making me feel good?” Anya echoed voice shaking, paling at the implication of the word. “Did the queen make you do that for her?” she demanded to know, voice harder and eyes unyielding.

Marie tried to free her wrists from the woman’s firm hold, trying to inch away more frantically now. Anya was obviously angry now. She did not understand what had prompted the woman’s anger. Maybe the woman truly expected totally different things from her. She shook her head frantically, the warning ringing through her mind that it should have remained a secret between the queen and her.

Anya let go of the girl’s wrists abruptly when she finally noticed just how distraught the girl seemed to be right now. Marie immediately inched away into the corner of the bed, pressing her back against the safety of the wall and peering at Anya anxiously.

The girl’s reaction was answer enough without confirmation and Anya felt bile rise in her throat at the realization of just what exactly the girl had gone through. Her emotions were going crazy and she stood abruptly from the bed, storming into the bathroom and slamming the door closed behind herself. In a fit of rage Anya threw the bowl standing on a table against the wall. It burst into pieces immediately at the impact and water ran down the wall, leaving a darkened strain behind. Her rage gave way to an encompassing sense of failure. It was her fault that the girl had come into the hands of the Ice queen in the first place. Her legs gave out under her and she slid down onto the floor as she felt hot tears run down her cheeks.

Marie flinched violently at the crashing sound of the bowl hitting the wall and looked at the door to the bathroom in alarm. She did not understand Anya’s reaction in the slightest. Had she done something wrong? And how would she be punished for it? When the general did not return to the room after several minutes Marie’s worry only increased. She thought that she could hear faint sounds of crying from the bathroom, but she was not sure.

When more minutes flowed by and the general had not returned yet, Marie cautiously slid from the bed. Slowly she walked over to the bathroom and carefully pushed the door open.

Marie stopped in the opened door inhaling harshly. Anya was truly crying and she had obviously shattered a bowl in probably. Her brows scrunched up in confusion. She did not understand why the woman was crying. Had she upset her somehow?

“I am sorry…” she offered in a soft voice, hovering in the opened door indecisively. She had no idea what she had done wrong, but apologizing felt to be the safest way to go, even though she may not understand for what she was apologizing.

Anya startled at her charge’s soft words, she had not heard the girl entering the bathroom. She shook her head to wave off the girl’s apology “There is nothing for you to apologize for” she assured the girl in a tone that left no room for discussion, as she stood up from the floor.

“You are crying…” Marie stated unsurely. It had to have been her fault somehow.

Anya stepped closer to the girl, trying to ignore the fact that Marie immediately inched backwards slightly. Her hands hovered above the girl’s shoulders indecisively for a moment, before she placed them firmly on her shoulders, once again ignoring the flinch the contact prompted. She squeezed the girl’s shoulders reassuringly and she crouched down in front of her, so that they were on the same eye level. “You have done nothing wrong, Marie” Anya tried to convince the girl in a firm tone “The queen has wronged you, so there is nothing you need to apologize for”.

The gears seemed to be turning within the girl’s mind, but Anya highly doubted that Marie would really believe in her words at the moment. She sighed under her breath, squeezing the girl’s shoulders again with a tight-lipped smile.

All of them would need to be there for Marie in the upcoming weeks and months. Dealing with what had happened to her, would not be easy and Anya dearly hoped the girl would regain her memories quickly. It would make it so much easier for her and Lexa if Marie truly remembered their connection.

 

 

Chapter 158

Abby’s POV

Abby had been quite surprised to hear her daughter ask for her presence in Polis. She had not been in the capitol since Octavia’s and Lincoln’s bonding. She had also not seen Clarke since then. She had tried several times to get Clarke to agree to come back to Skykru, but she had ceased her attempts after Clarke had denied to speak to her for several weeks. They had only gotten updates from Monty at that time.

Octavia had left Arkadia for good as well. Both, Markus and she, had not expected anything less, but Bellamy still seemed to miss his sister dearly. They still saw Octavia regularly though. The girl was still a second to Indra and the Trikru chief visited Arkadia frequently now that the snow had melted again.

Thanks to the help of Trikru, they had survived the winter. Abby was reluctant to admit that they would not have survived without any aid, but even she was not dumb enough to claim that now. The Trikru warriors had been imperative in building their storages of food, warm clothes and furs for winter.

Abby looked around Arkadia as she moved to the rover. She had promised Clarke to use one and by thus shorten the time to reach the capitol considerably. Clarke had already told her that Marie suffered from an amnesia and she had already searched through the database of the Ark for literature of the old world which could be beneficial.

Beside the carcass of the Ark they had built quite a few of huts, again receiving aid from Trikru warriors for that, and families had begun to settle down in them.

In a few weeks they expected the first births on earth. Taking out the contraceptive implants from all the females had taken a few weeks, but their numbers would undoubtedly grow in the future.

Raven, who would be driving her rover, already waited at the vehicle with Markus. Abby smiled slightly at the man, he had already been out of the quarters they now shared when she woke in the morning.

“I had wanted to see you off” Markus said with a genuine smile.

Raven rolled her eyes at them and already slipped into the rover, giving them a moment of privacy.

Abby shook her head in amusement at the young woman’s antics, before she turned to Markus “I will come back as soon as possible” she promised. The corners of her mouth tilted into a slight smile as Markus pressed a kiss onto her lips.

Abby had left the medical bay in the capable hands of Jackson for the duration of her absence. Nyko was currently here as well. The Trikru healer had been open to exchange knowledge right from the start and Abby hoped that other healers would follow his example once word spread. There was so much they could learn from each other when it came to healing techniques.

Trade had slowly started to be established between TonDC and Arkadia on a regular basis as well. Things were truly starting to look up for them now.

The news they had heard from Monty about a possible war with Azgeda was troubling to Abby and Markus likewise. Markus had been quick to assure the commander that Skykru would support their army with guns and manpower if needed.

Abby was worried of the political status of the coalition. They had pledged themselves to it irrevocably now and that worried her even more.

Surprisingly the remaining part of the delinquents they had sent to earth were the most open to the Trikru warriors teaching them how to hunt and fight.

It worried her that in total five of the kids had already decided that they would leave Arkadia and move to TonDC. Two girls had fallen in love with warriors from the village and were intending to follow Octavia’s lead and bond with them. Abby had tried to discourage them, but it had been of no use. The other three had found a first in TonDC who was willing to take them one. One was aiming to be educated to become a hunter, the second wanted to become a blacksmith and the third would try to become a warrior.

Markus did not share her fears in the regard that they needed to keep their people close. The man was of the steadfast opinion that a tight connection to Trikru could only benefit them in the end. She had stopped talking to him about this subject, only the future would show them who was correct in their assumption.

She squeezed Markus’ hand slightly in goodbye and got into the rover next to Raven. The young mechanic had a cocky grin on her face. She loved every opportunity to drive on of the rovers and the usage was tightly controlled to use only spare amounts of fuel.

“Ready to go, doc?” the young woman asked with a grin.

Abby slightly rolled her eyes. Since Raven’s leg had been cured with the machine they had retrieved from the Mountain, the young woman had recovered immensely, losing all signs of depression.

Abby let her eyes wander over Arkadia as Raven slowly steered the rover towards the fence. Children were running through the place, playing tag with loud squeals. People were working on the fields that had been cultivated. They would be able to harvest for the first time in a few months’ time. 

The way towards the capitol passed in relative silence. Raven had turned on some music and was humming along the tune, while Abby simply watched the landscape flow by them.

Abby was pleasantly surprised that it was Clarke in person who waited for their arrival at the walls of Polis. She smiled at her daughter in greeting and immediately enveloped the girl into a tight embrace.

“You seem happy” Abby whispered into her ear, before she let go. But it was true, that the girl looked happy. Her blue eyes were shining again, although the worry was apparent on her face.

Clarke forced a smile onto her face. She had hoped to evade her mother’s attempts to get her back into Arkadia for as long as possible. She had only asked her mother to come solely for Marie’s sake.

“Mom” she retorted with a strained tone “There is more you will need to know about Marie to help her”. She had briefly spoken with Anya in the morning and the general had seemed rather shaken. Anya had confirmed what Ontari had implied.

“Well, hello to you too, Clarke” Raven drawled, leaning against the rover casually, interrupting their exchange.

Clarke forget about her tension for a moment as she turned to Raven. A smile graced her lips, as she enveloped the mechanic in an enthusiastic hug “Hello, Raven. It is great to see you”.

“I have heard the kid really can’t take a break for too long” Raven commented. Although her tone was still rather light, her brown eyes showed her compassion for Marie.

Clarke sighed “You have no idea”. She had spent most of the night trying to comfort Lexa. It had been painfully obvious just how much Marie’s return had upset the commander.

They strolled through the streets in relative silence. Clarke cautiously told her mother about her place as a healer in the capitol, choosing her words carefully. Her mother had no idea about her relationship with the commander and she doubted that the woman would take the news well.

“I have already taken a look at her body” Clarke addressed her mother, once they reached the tower and the privacy of the elevator. She knew where they would find Marie as Anya had told her that she would be staying within her quarters with the girl until Abby arrived.

Abby nodded in acknowledgment waiting for her daughter to continue.

“There is a lot of scarring” Clarke told her “I don’t know if there is any possibility to diminish it at least slightly. But I guess she will need something to keep her skin soft.”

Abby frowned slightly. If there were no wounds justifying her immediate attention, she did not know for sure why she had been called to Polis at all.

Clarke shortly looked to Raven, before she sighed “I guess it is better, if you hear it from me now. Marie does not have any recollection of who she was before she was brought to Nia.”

Abby nodded “You already told me about the amnesia. Does she remember anything from before?”

Clarke nodded slightly “She remembered Anya’s voice and she knows that she has already seen Lexa’s eyes. But not much else”.

Abby frowned slightly at the off-hand use of the commander’s name by her daughter. Both women must be close to prompt such a familiar usage.

“I don’t know if there is anything we can do to aid her in regaining her memories” Clarke continued, before her features sobered completely. Sadness and anger flashed through her blue eyes “Marie has not been subjected to physical torture only”.

“Only?” It was Raven who reacted with her characteristic sarcasm, an eyebrow raised cockily.

Clarke shook her head “We know for sure now that Nia has sexually abused her as well…” her voice trailed off weakly.

Abby inhaled sharply and her eyes widened. Raven’s expression froze momentarily before it sobered completely as well.

There had been very few cases of sexual assaults on the Ark to Abby’s knowledge and those where the victims had been minors had been even more scarce. She had never heard of a case of such an assault happening between the same gender.

The combination between the trauma of sexual abuse, physical and probably mental torture and amnesia would make a therapy extremely taxing on everyone involved. The girl would need to be supervised as much during the day as possible. Her days would need to be structured extremely well to give her a sense of stability.

But it would not only be Marie who would need help. But those who would deal on a daily basis with her, would probably need help as well.

She had never been confronted with such a patient and Abby was not sure that she would be qualified at all to offer any assistance. None of their doctors on the Ark had ever truly been schooled as a therapist.

“I will try to help as much as possible” Abby assured her daughter honestly “But this is out of my capabilities as well” she admitted sadly.

She told her daughter that they would need to speak through the girl’s typical days and who would spend most of her time with Marie. Abby wanted an opportunity to speak with every single one of them. She was glad that she had already downloaded some of the literature of psychologists of the old world and hoped that she would find something useful there.

“For the majority of the time it will probably be Anya who will be with Marie” Clarke quickly answered. She would probably also see quite a bit of the child, once it was safe for Lexa to be around Marie again. After Anya had told them that Marie had asked after the brunette handmaid, Lexa had already decided that she planned to spend some time with Marie under the disguise of the handmaid again.

Abby nodded with a slight frown. Her previous interactions with the Trikru general had not been very easy and she already knew that she would be needed to speak to the commander as well. She was even slightly nervous to come face to face with Marie for the first time. Memories of the sweet girl who had sat with her mother in the medical bay for weeks flashed up in her mind. Even on the ground the girl had previously managed to retain some of her kindness and gentleness and somehow still managed to blend in with the harsh culture around her. It would undoubtedly be a hard task for Marie to be integrated back into a normal daily life now.

“It would be best if I can speak to Marie on her own first” Abby said once they reached the top floor of the tower.

Clarke nodded “I will call Anya out” and after knocking, she stepped inside the general’s quarters.

The atmosphere inside the room was strained. Anya’s emotional exhaustion was obvious on her features.

Marie sat at the table, looking tense and completely out of place. A book sat on her table in front of her and Anya waited for the girl to read what she had instructed her to. The rest of the night had passed dragging, neither of them had gotten any more sleep at all.

Marie looked up from the book, a startled expression on her face. She recognized the blonde young woman as the healer, who had been to see her during the previous night. She was unable to hear the words the blonde whispered to Anya, but she saw the general nod in acknowledgment.

“A healer from Skykru is hear to speak with you” Anya addressed Marie in a strict tone “You are to answer her question in absolute truth only, is that clear?”

Marie nodded quickly, obviously still intimidated slightly by the general’s strict mannerism. She immediately wondered why another healer was needed to speak with her. And why a healer from Skykru?

Marie watched the two women leave and only a moment later another woman entered. She was blonde as well, but older and she slightly resembled the blonde healer, so she judged that they might be related to each other.

“Hello Marie” Abby greeted the girl kindly. She had to force herself to keep her professional façade upright. Clarke had not understated the obvious changes in Marie’s appearance. Not much seemed to be left of the young girl she had seen last at Octavia’s bonding.

Marie only nodded in acknowledgment, looking up at the woman clearly unsure.

Abby took out a chair and sat down opposite of Marie, judging the girl mutely.

It was clearly quickly that simply being stared at in absolute silence unnerved Marie immensely. The girl was tipping her fingertips against the table in apparent nervousness, but she stared back at Abby in silence as well.

“Do I know you?” Marie finally asked after long tense moments.

Abby smiled slightly and nodded “You used to know me, yes. Has Anya told you about your life on the Ark?”

Marie shook her head, her expression unmoved “Only that I was born into Skykru”.

Abby nodded again in acknowledgment. She was aware that it would be more important for Marie to regain the memories she had made after landing on earth. “Marie, I know that you have been through much in the last months. I have been asked to counsel you”.

Marie scrunched up her brows, sitting slightly straighter in the chair, but she did not offer any words as a response.

“If I am to help you, you need to be honest with me, Marie. I will speak with you about what has happened to you and you will have to tell me what you are feeling for example” Abby explained in a soothing tone.

Marie’s frown deepened and her expression became stony “There is nothing to tell” she said decisively and looked away.

Abby sighed under her breath. “It is alright, if you do not wish to talk at the moment. You just need to know, that I will listen to anything you might wish to speak about in the future, alright?”

Marie inclined her head in silent acknowledgment, but her expression still remained hard and unreadable.

“Do you know what has caused your memory loss?” Abby asked, changing the topic. It would not help if she forced Marie to speak, if she was so clearly against it.

“I have hit my head somehow” Marie informed the woman. She had felt blood running down the side of her face and she had felt a lump on her head. The lump was still there slightly. When she told Abby so, the woman stood from her chair.

Marie flinched visibly when Abby abruptly stretched out her hands and felt along the girl’s head for the lump. The girl was correct in her assumption and Abby could still feel a deformation on the girl’s head. The fall from the tree must have been hard to cause such a wound. Mixed with the fact that Marie’s skull had already been hurt before by the operation trying to treat her aneurysm, it was no wonder that another trauma to the head had caused such a serious wound.

“You have started to remember things” Abby finally said, stepping back from Marie and sitting back down on the chair.

Marie nodded “I remember Anya. Or at least her name and that I know her voice”.

“That is a starting point” Abby said “Do you know what a trigger is?”

Marie frowned slightly and shook her head in the negative.

“Hearing Anya’s voice again has been a trigger for you. It has started to trigger memories to come back to your mind. Your memories are not erased from your mind. You just cannot excess them at the moment” Abby explained calmly “Triggers may be a lot of things. A certain phrase, a smell, a touch or even a place which has been linked to emotional memories”.

“So, I need to trigger my memories?” Marie questioned “Why has nothing come back before?”

“You have not been in the north before, Marie” Abby answered “But it is promising that you have already started to react to triggers”.

Marie nodded, hope visibly flashing through her grey eyes. Removed from the queen, who had dictated her every move, she felt lost. So, Marie hoped to fell better once she remembered who she was.

“Is there anything that you wish to talk about?” Abby asked voice sounding hopeful. It was obvious that the girl felt insecure about the new situation she was in. But Abby doubted that the effects of her trauma would really show before she settled back into her life in Polis or at least began to find a little trust again into someone. The girl’s mind would be too focused on trying to regain her memory now and trying to fit in.

Marie immediately shook her head and her face closed off as well again.

Abby nodded with a low sigh leaving her lips. She knew that counselling was not for everyone, but it would never work, if Marie refused to express what she was feeling. She would stay for a few days and try to offer the girl different ways of expressing herself, which would not necessarily require her to talk. But there was no way, she could force the girl to work through her experiences.

“I will see you tomorrow then” Abby said to Marie with a kind smile and left the table.

A guard motioned her over to the door at the end of the corridor and Abby stepped inside. The rooms were easily double the size of the general’s quarters and she guessed that they would be belonging to the commander.

“How did it go?” Clarke asked her mother immediately. She had sat down with Anya on the couch. The general was absently caressing Risha who sat by her feet. Lexa was in the bathroom at the moment, getting ready for a meeting which would start soon.

Abby sighed “She refuses to speak to me about anything which happened to her. I will not be able to offer her any help this way. But I think that working through her trauma will need to take place gradually. She is not ready to face it yet and it is obvious that the girl wants to focus on regaining her memories.”

Clarke frowned “Maybe she will open up with time again?”

Abby looked doubtful “If you are correct about the torture and the extent of it, it is unlikely. The queen will have undoubtedly forbidden her to speak about anything which happened between them. Has she freely told you about the sexual abuse?” The doctor looked to the general in question.

Anya shook her head, a mixture out of sadness and anger shining in her brown eyes “She seemed to be of the impression that she needed to offer herself to me. But she did not say anything when I specifically asked about what Nia had made her do”.

Abby nodded with another sigh “It is even more unlikely that she would open up to me about it. Right now, she only feels a slight connection to you. It is obvious that she does not understand it yet, but I hope that more memories will come back to her over time, now that she is back in a familiar environment”.

Anya nodded, they all shared that hope after all.

 

Chapter 159

Lexa had listened to Clarke’s mother’s words from the bathroom. She would not confess it aloud, but a part of her had already feared that they would not be able to help Marie in her recovery. Although the logical part of her mind understood that Clarke’s mother was their best hope to actually help the girl, another part of her detested the woman deeply and she doubted that working with her now would be any easier than their previous encounters had been.

Although she was relatively sure that Clarke would not wish to go back to Skykru and by thus give in to her mother’s constant pleas, Lexa could still not completely silence the little voice in her mind that agreed with the woman. Clarke would surely be safer away from her, but she selfishly hoped for Clarke to stay by her side.

Lexa sighed under her breath, all too aware that she was stalling for no reason. So, she straightened her shoulders and stepped out of the bathroom.

Clarke looked up from her place immediately and a soft smile graced her lips in silent greeting.

Lexa felt the corners of her own lips ghost upwards answering the blonde’s smile almost instinctively. She stopped the smile from taking form completely as her gaze fell to Clarke’s mother. “Abby” the commander addressed the older woman respectfully “We are grateful you have come to assist”.

“Where is Marie now?” Lexa shortly turned to Anya in question. She did not feel well with the thought of leaving the girl alone at the moment.

Abby had nodded in silent acknowledgment at the commander’s thanks, but her eyes stayed hefted on Clarke suspiciously.

“In my quarters” Anya answered with a slight frown. She had not considered the fact that Marie was alone there now. Who knows what the girl would get up to?

“I will need to speak with all of you” Abby quickly intervened before either of the two women could suggest to leave.

Lexa nodded and crossed the room while saying “Gustus can watch over her for now”.

Abby watched the commander’s movements and waited for the woman to return before she spoke “Marie has been gone for how long exactly?”

“Six moons” Anya immediately answered before Lexa could open her mouth.

Abby nodded again “Marie said that her memory starts in the woods, before she was brought into the north. Which also means that whatever queen Nia has wanted to make her believe will run very deeply in her mind now”.

Lexa and Anya banded a silent glance, they had known as much already from Ontari.

“From the way in which Marie acted, it is apparent that being removed from the queen has confused her. She is probably feeling lost” Abby continued “It may sound senseless, but what Marie needs now is a very strictly organized day. She needs a clear set of rules and expectations and she needs to be aware of the consequences misbehaving or failure will have.”

Abby looked at all three women shortly before she continued “Forcing Marie to talk about what has been done to her, will not work. She needs to be aware that you are willing to listen to whatever she may wish to say, but I doubt she will enclose anything before she starts to trust you.”

Abby paused for a moment. Clarke had told her that an older girl had brought Marie back “The girl who had brought Marie back to Polis” she started “Are they friends?”

Anya sighed slightly “They have been and Marie had wanted to see Ontari. She apparently wanted the girl to confirm what I have told her about her past”.

Abby nodded again “Then she might even be the one to who Marie might open up first. She should be able to see her, if that is possible”. The doctor had no idea who the girl was, but the expression on the commander’s and the general’s face both showed their disdain for the girl.

“If Marie asks about her past, you should answer her” Abby advised “But do not simply list of her past to her, she will not feel any connection to it that way and she can feel only overwhelmed.”

“How can we help her regain her memory quicker?” the commander asked after a moment of contemplation.

Abby shook her head “That is just the thing. You cannot expect Marie to quickly remember everything. It has taken her sixth month to even start remembering anything. It is a very real probability, that she will never regain her complete memory.”

“But it is a good sign that Marie has started to remember something after being back to Polis for only a few hours” Clarke chimed in vehemently, sensing both Lexa and Anya faltering. Clarke had been in the bathroom when Titus had demanded to speak with Lexa about Marie’s return in the early hours of the morning. The flamekeeper had been insistent in his opinion that Marie could not remain in her function within Polis if she was a possible danger to Lexa.

Abby nodded with a cautious expression “You are right that it is a good sign, but by no way a guarantee. She should be exposed to places where she had previously made memories. Places where her emotions have run high might work best”.

“We will try to think of where that might be the case” Lexa agreed with a neutral expression.

Anya had seemed lost in thought for the last moments and her voice sounded almost tentative “Should we treat her different in any way?”

Abby immediately shook her head “No, pity will not help her. It will not be easy to deal with her now and I can guarantee that she will test all of you. She will try to test her limits. There is no way of predicting how she truly reacts to the trauma of what she has been through in the last months. Right now, her mind has not worked through it, but was solely focused on surviving. Once she feels to be in a safer environment, that is bound to change.”

“What can we expect then?” Lexa asked with a slight frown.

Abby thinned her lips “Just like I said, there is no way to predict that. But from what I have researched victims of torture and sexual violence show completely different reaction. She might suddenly wish to explain very explicitly what has been done to her. Marie might never be able to talk about it. She is probably going to suffer from nightmares.”

“She already does…” Anya said, her voice exhausted and her brown eyes laden with sadness.

“She should not be left alone for long periods of time. In some cases, victims have become violent against themselves, when their minds are unable to cope with the inner turmoil otherwise” Abby listed off what she had read so far “She is bound to test if you are going to keep your word. It is imperative that you all stick to the rules set for her. The most important thing right now is for her to feel safe and protected again, but it will not be easy to regain her trust.”

 

Gustus stepped into the general’s quarters with a guarded expression. So far, he had not interacted with the girl since her return to the tower.

His dark eyes narrowed when he looked to Marie. The girl’s cheeks seemed slightly heated as if she had hurried with something. Gustus quickly scanned the room and noticed how a few things looked untidy and disturbed, as if they had been searched through.

“If you have found a weapon, put it back onto the table instantly” he ordered, his voice hard and his dark eyes strict.

Marie seemed to contemplate her possibilities for a moment, her grey eyes flicking to the door, before she jutted out her chin and sullenly pulled a dagger from the waistband of her pants.

“Anything else?” Gustus prompted the girl almost harshly.

Marie’s lips thinned visibly and she bent down and took out another dagger, probably shoved into her boots. The girl crossed her arms over her chest in a moody gesture and her grey eyes were angry as they glared at the burly man.

“Good” Gustus nodded, taking the weapons from the table and putting them onto a cupboard on the other side of the room, out of reach of the girl. It would not do to underestimate the girl’s fighting skills. If anything, Ice Nation assassins were well known for their skills and Marie had been with Nia long enough to have learned a lot. “Thank you” the burly man said and nodded to the blonde girl as he sat down opposite of her.

Surprise flashed over the girl’s features quickly, before she schooled her features again. Her crossed arms did loosen though and she was visibly unsure of how to act now.

“Did I used to know you as well?” Marie finally broke the silence in an almost tentative voice.

“You did” Gustus agreed, the corners of his lips tilting up in a smile “We are fortunate to see you alive again, something we had not thought to ever do”.

Marie looked at the man with a frown on her features. It was obvious by the slight tilt of her head and the concentration on her face, that she tried to remember him.

Gustus shook his head, when apparent frustration overshadowed Marie’s expression. “Your memories are going to come back sooner or later, Marie. There is no reason to be frustrated. You are alive, that is all that matters”.

Marie’s grey eyes looked almost pleading, before she quickly averted her gaze from his dark eyes.

Gustus saw the girl stiffen when he searched for something within a pocket of his coat, so Marie was obviously still watching him from the corner of her eyes. The change in the girl’s behaviour was apparent, where Marie had been relaxed and happy, always smiling and constantly chatting, the girl was suspicious, tense and silent now.

“Do you recognize that?” Gustus asked once he found what he had been searching for.

Marie’s eyes widened visibly at the sight. The man must be speaking the truth then, if he had kept one of her braids with him, she must have meant something to him in the past.

The queen had told her over and over again, that she was the only one to care for her. But keeping someone’s braid spoke otherwise. Did other people hold a braid of her in possession as well?

“Who else does have one?” Marie asked with inquiring eyes.

“Why do you ask?” Gustus asked instead, keeping his tone even and his dark eyes kind.

Marie narrowed her eyes at the man, looking away again a moment later and pressing her lips together. How could she find out who else still kept one of her braids? She longed to take the braid from the table and feel it between her fingers. She had mourned the loss of her hair and the red bands, although she did not understand why.

“I must have meant something to you…” Marie finally said lowly, still averting her eyes and grinding her teeth together. She was frustrated with herself that she had answered the man at all. She did not even know, who he was. He did match the description of the commander’s closest personal guard, but she could not be sure without confirmation.

“You still do, Marie” Gustus emphasised honestly and he calmly met the girl’s startled gaze.

“The queen said no one…” Marie whispered, trailing off quickly and looking away again. Confusion and turmoil evident on her expression.

“Queen Nia lied to you, Marie” Gustus said in a steady tone waiting until the girl met his gaze again “She must have told you a lot of lies.”

Marie’s lips thinned visibly and anger flashed through her grey eyes “The queen cares for me” she defended Nia instantly.

Gustus sighed under his breath. It was obvious that Marie would not believe him, no matter what he said at the moment. “You wanted to know who else still has one of your braids…” he started, trying to steer the girl’s attention away from the queen. Once Marie’s grey eyes clearly showed her interest and curiosity, Gustus continued “Anya and Lexa both carry one with them at all times. Alira also has been given one.”

Confusion and doubt flashed over Marie’s features quickly at the inclusion of the commander’s name. “Who is Alira?” Marie asked instead after the unfamiliar name.

“Alira is Lexa’s personal handmaid” Gustus explained “She used to bring you honey cakes for your meals, because you enjoyed them so much”.

Marie frowned slightly. She remembered that Anya had told her about the fact that she had previously enjoyed her tea immensely sweet as well, so it would make sense that she had liked sweet treats too. The queen had not allowed her any form of treats and Marie wondered why she had been allowed to indulge here. But she nodded in silent acknowledgment of the man’s explanation.

“What is your name?” she finally asked, feeling stupid for having to ask in the first place. But she wanted to link a name to her thoughts and not just a face.

“Gustus” the burly man answered in a kind tone, his eyes shortly showing what Marie thought to be sorrow.

Something Ontari had said, still nagged at her mind. The man seemed honest and his name matched to the commander’s personal guard, which would explain why they even had contact in the past, so he should be able to confirm what Ontari had implied.

“Would I have ….” Marie started to ask, but stopped the question before she could have fully formed it.

“You can ask whatever you want” Gustus reassured the girl, keeping his expression open and kind.

“Would I have killed the commander?” Marie asked, gazing into the man’s dark eyes inquiringly.

“Not willingly, no” Gustus immediately answered in the negative. He hoped it was a sign that Marie was thinking about her orders from Nia before blindly trying to fulfil them, now that her initial plan had been circumvented.

“Mmh…” Marie muttered, obviously deeply in thought now and her gaze was fixed on the wall again, looking away from Gustus. She was internally debating, if she could believe anything he said, or not. The fact that he had carried one of her braids with him, made him somehow trustworthy in her mind. But that he proclaimed the queen to be lying, almost nulled that again.

They sat in silence for some time. Marie had nothing to say to the man and although Gustus looked as if he wished to say a lot to her, the burly guard kept his lips sealed. The sorrow Marie thought to be lingering in his dark eyes annoyed her beyond end and she hoped he would leave soon.

Her wish was granted when Anya returned an unknown time later. The general nodded to Gustus and the guard stood up from his place at the table, biding them both goodbye by inclining his head mutely, Marie did not reciprocate the gesture.

“You are attending a meeting with me now” Anya proclaimed, to which Marie frowned in confusion. “You are still the commander’s second, even though you do not remember that at the moment.”

Marie nodded with a cautious expression. It was probable that she had already sat in on meeting before. She had not expected to see the commander so soon, she had thought that the general would keep her far away from Lexa kom Trikru.

Anya had noticed the fact that Marie must have searched through her belongings judging from their state and her brown eyes narrowed slightly. Abby had said that Marie needed clear rules, so she could just start with establishing such. The general sat down opposite of Marie which only deepened the girl’s frown.

“Let me make a few things clear to you now” Anya addressed the girl in a strict tone “I do not ever want to see again that you have searched through my things. If you need something that has not been provided to you, you are to ask for it and not try to sneak around.”

Marie nodded and her grey eyes trailed to the daggers she had found and were still lying on the cupboard, it was obvious that the general had also seen the weapons.

“You are not to carry a weapon within the tower” Anya added her brown eyes hard. That was something they would not be open to discuss, so long as they could not trust the girl letting her be armed was a potential danger. “You will have excess to weapons on the training pits, but nowhere else. You will not be pleased with the consequences if I find you hiding one”. Her tone had gotten almost harsh at the end.

Marie’s grey eyes widened visibly and she quickly nodded her agreement.

“Until you have settled back in, you are to be at my side, at all times” Anya explained, her voice serious and unyielding.

Marie’s eyes narrowed slightly. It was obvious that it meant in other words, that she was not trusted in the moment. So, she would be nothing more then a prisoner here as well.

“I am sure that more will be added to that list later on” Anya interrupted the girl’s line of thought “And now, come” the general ordered and stood up again.

Marie followed the woman out of the room. She noticed Gustus standing in front of the doors to another chamber, so it was reasonable to think that the commander lived there.

“Come!” Anya addressed her charge again, voice sharper, when she noticed the girl lingering behind and staring to the commander’s quarters.

Marie did not familiar with the halls of the tower, although she reasoned with herself that she probably had been familiar with them in the past. “Have we lived here?” she finally asked the general on their way.

Anya shortly glanced at the girl and nodded in confirmation, but she did not elaborate as they entered the throne room now.

Marie obediently followed Anya inside, but she felt her eyes drawn to the throne. It looked totally different from the queen’s throne, but something of the twisted branches, with blades imbedded in them, of this throne seemed familiar. She did not recognize anyone of those who were already standing inside the room. She recognized the banners of the clans, but simply because the queen had taught them to her, she also noticed that the Azgeda banner had been removed and a chair remained empty. The only banner she did not recognize was that of what she assumed to be Skykru, the young man sitting on the chair there was unfamiliar to her as well, although he smiled kindly to her once their eyes connected, Marie looked away again quickly.

She wondered internally why she was to attend meetings, if they did not trust her at the moment. But her thoughts were cut short, when a bald man suddenly proclaimed the arrival of the commander of the blood.

Marie’s grey eyes followed the woman’s arrival in interest, trying to spot the malice Nia had predicted to be within the woman’s features.

“We are gathered here today because of the return of my second” the commander shortly looked over to Marie again “And the return of Ontari kom Azgeda.”

The ambassadors had started to mutter between themselves, it had only been rumoured that both girls had returned to the capitol until now.

Lexa nodded to Titus and the flamekeeper motioned to a guard to retrieve Ontari. The Ice Nation nightblood had been made to wait in another hall, until she was called in front of the ambassadors.

It was obvious pretty quickly that the ambassadors expected the commander to execute Ontari and Marie felt a small sliver of fear for the older girl. They may not be friends, but Ontari had been kind to her and tried to help her and she did not wish for her death.

“Ontari kom Azgeda will pledge herself to me officially as one of my novitiates” Lexa proclaimed over the muttering, which instantly died down.

Marie followed the proceedings silently, she felt Anya watching herself from time to time, as if to gauge her reactions.

Ontari walked into the throne room with a straightened back and her head held high. She had been allowed to bath and a handmaid had made her hair. She had also been given new clothing as it seemed.

The nightbloods eyes softened visibly once she looked at Marie, although the younger girl barely showed any outward reaction to her arrival.

Ontari recited the words the flamekeeper had intoned into her the previous night and she meant every word of them.

Lexa had to silence the ambassadors after Ontari finished her pledge and the commander had accepted it. It was obvious that almost half of them was not satisfied with the solution to let the nightblood remain unharmed.

“Ontari has pledged herself to me now” Lexa emphasised, voice sharp and eyes hard “She is born with the blood of the commander and she has been the one to return my second to my side”.

The last part prompted new muttering to break out instantly and Lexa silenced them again. Ontari was motioned over to a group of children of varying ages, Marie had not truly noticed yet.

What the meeting dealt with now, prompted a frown from Marie, the commander and the clans were preparing a war against Ice Nation.

 

 

Chapter 160

Marie left the meeting together with Anya, feeling utterly confused.

The commander had not met with what the queen had told her beforehand. After the ambassadors had been dismissed, a few complainers had been allowed inside of the throne room and Marie had watched on with a frown how the commander had handled them. She had not seen something like that while she had been with the queen. Or in fact she had seen someone trying to complain to the queen, apparently his family was starving, but the response of the queen had been his execution and sending back his head to his family.

She had felt the commander’s gaze falling on herself several times during the meeting, but she had sat too far away from the commander to be able to truly look into her eyes.

In addition, Marie had also felt that some of the children, who Anya had told her were all potential candidates to become commander after Lexa, had watched her intently. She had seen that Ontari had been motioned to join them, after she had bowed before the commander. She thought that one of the older children, a blonde boy in particular, was somehow familiar to her, but there was nothing definite.

Anya guided her out of the tower and Marie followed her in silence.

The reactions of the people wo recognized her were still the same. Awe and surprise were obvious on their faces, most inclined their heads, while some others even bowed before her. Marie furrowed her brow, but she nodded back to them cautiously.

Anya pulled the girl out of her thoughts, once they reached the training pits. The general handed Marie two light swords, the weapons the girl had shown most promise in.

Marie eyed the blades mutely a slight frown on her face. The royal guard of the queen had made her fight with only one sword and rarely offered her anything else. Still, it felt oddly familiar as she closed her fingers around the handles of the swords.

Anya had specifically chosen this set of blades. It had been the ones Lexa had had made for Marie and the girl had already trained with them a few times before Echo had brought her to Nia. Lexa and she had agreed that they needed to evaluate Marie’s skills as a warrior anew now. But not just her skills were of interest. The girl had previously been more of a cautious fighter and not been particularly inclined to violence, but her characteristics might have changed as well.

It was obvious that Marie was slightly confused to be faced with Anya herself and not one of the other seconds being trained on the training pits, but she did not give voice to her confusion.

While Anya had to hold back a lot during training with Marie in the past, she did have to be more careful with upholding her own guard against the girl now. The child’s skills had improved tremendously.

Before, Marie had hesitated in causing actually wounds during training, always taking down her weapons at the first signs of blood. But now the girl did only stop, when ordered to. Marie did not even wince, when Anya’s sword bit into her upper arm.

“You have improved a lot” Anya remarked once she ordered Marie to put down her weapons, efficiently ending the training session.

Marie handed the blades over to the general, inclining her head in acknowledgment.

Anya frowned slightly. It unnerved her how expressionless the girl kept her features now, even her grey eyes had remained cold and empty.

“Has anything felt familiar to you?” the general asked while storing away the weapons.

Marie glanced up at the Trikru woman before she said “I think I distinctly recognize one of the older male nightbloods…”

“Go on” Anya prompted the girl gently. Abby had said that every memory the girl regained, was a step in the right direction.

“He was blonde” Marie answered “Ontari stood next to him later” she added as a better explanation.

“You mean Aden” Anya told her charge. All of the nightbloods had taken a liking to Marie, maybe with the slight exception of Kato, but she had been closer with some of the others.

“Have I trained with these before?” Marie asked after a moment of silence, glancing back at the weapon rack. She had noticed that Anya was the only one, who had taken something from this rack.

Anya nodded “They have been made particularly for you” she explained.

“They feel familiar as well” Marie added forlornly.

Anya nodded again, she had hoped for more specific memories to come back to Marie, but it was probably better than nothing, that she had felt anything at all.

“Have I spent a lot of time here?” Marie asked suddenly, looking around the training pits with a thoughtful expression.

“That depends on your definition of “a lot of time”” Anya answered. The girl’s training had been interrupted by illnesses and injuries too often for her liking. Added together it was reasonable to assume that Marie had spent much more time within the commander’s quarters during her time in Polis, than on the training pits.

Marie frowned slightly at the vague answer, but she did not inquire more in depth.

“I want to show you something” Anya told her charge and motioned her to follow her again. Marie nodded mutely and fell into step slightly behind the general.

Anya did not comment on the apparent space Marie left between them although she had to keep the frown from her features with force. Abby had suggested to try to bring Marie to different places, where they know the girl had enjoyed to spend time before and what had come to the general’s mind immediately had been the stables.

Lexa had also said that keeping Risha confined within her quarters was getting more and more difficult with the hour, so they had planned to reunite the wolf with her human in the evening, as Lexa had wanted to be present as well. They had decided that Lexa would not attempt to spend time with their charge alone in public for now, although it was apparent the commander longed to reacquaintance herself with the girl as well.

Marie tried to keep track of the ways they walked, she doubted she would be let out of sight anytime soon, but it could still come in handy later if she knew her way around. She frowned slightly, when the general led her into stables.

Two horses, who stood next to each other in their boxes, seemed to recognize her though. With a deepening frown, Marie stepped closer to the huge creatures.

Anya stayed back a step. She hoped that the commander’s horses truly recognized Marie, she herself rarely touched the beasts, only Lexa was able to truly handle them, without the constant danger of being bitten, kicked or stomped. Her own horse had been placed within this stable as well and the brown mare neighed in greeting.

Cautiously Marie stretched out her fingers and she gently let the tips of her fingers run over the muzzle of the black mare. A slight smile played around her mouth and her voice was tinted with wonder “I remember their names…”

Anya was barely able to decipher the girl’s whispered words, but once she did, she felt relieve course through her veins; Marie was remembering more things.

Marie’s face was scrunched up in confusion, as she vaguely remembered meeting Sontam for the first time. “The commander …” she started, trying to sort through her memories “…she allowed me to visit with them…” her words sounded more as a question.

Anya nodded with a faint smile on her lips. All of them were aware that Marie desperately needed to remember positive memories associated with Lexa, or keeping her as the commander’s second could prove to become a disaster.

The commander’s white mare neighed in obvious complaint at being ignored. Marie chuckled under her breath, a small smile dancing within her grey eyes “Yeah, yeah, stop being so jealous” she chided the warhorse, but scratched its nose with her other hand.

Anya’s own mare whinnied in obvious discontent at being ignored by Marie and the girl’s smile still remained as she stepped over to the general’s horse and greeted it as well.

Anya watched the girl’s antics in silence. As it looked now, she expected Marie to wish to spend a lot of time with the horses from now, the girl looked remotely content and relaxed, although her smile froze slightly when she caught the general watching her every move.

“You can come and visit them, whenever you wish” Anya offered lightly.

Marie looked over to the general in obvious surprise. “Alone?” she asked suspicion colouring her tone strongly.

Anya’s lips thinned slightly. Her instincts told her not to trust the girl on her own right now, Abby had advised to keep her supervised at all times as well, but Marie had been allowed to come here before as well and they were supposed to treat her as normal as possible at the same time. The general contemplated her answer carefully “You may come here on your own, with the condition that you let me or the commander know that you are going here. If you tell us that you want to come here, you go here without any detours and return in such a way as well.”

Marie frowned slightly in thought, but she nodded in acknowledgment. Internally she was confused why the general was offering her such a gesture of trust at all. It would probably be not too hard to get out of the tower without anyone noticing, if she truly wanted to. She doubted that the queen would have offered her the same kind of freedom though, there she had not been allowed to take a single step without the queen’s explicit order to take it.

The conversation she had had with the commander, when the woman had caught her within the warhorses’ paddock, was still circling through her mind. The woman had been oddly friendly and soft-spoken towards her, but they had not seemed particularly close. The woman had offered her the usage of her first name, something Marie was completely sure the queen would have never done, but she had not known her name back then.

Marie tried to concentrate hard on what had happened directly before or after that particular conversation, but the only thing she achieved was the beginning of a headache nagging between her eyes with a vicious insistence.

Anya watched anger and frustration flash over the girl’s face and she sighed under her breath, she felt oddly unprepared to reassure the child. “Marie, you have regained another memory, there is no need to strain yourself like that”.

Marie ground her teeth together visibly and her nod of acknowledgment was curt. Tears seemed to glisten in her grey eyes, before she looked away, took a few deep breaths and her expression closed off once again.

The queen’s words about the commander still rang loudly within her mind, but they already started to contrast strongly with her regained memories, even though she only had regained one clear memory of the commander so far. She had been completely sure that the queen truly had had her best interest in mind, it had not even crossed her mind, that the queen could have lied to her. Gustus’ words proclaiming exactly that, repeated themselves in her thoughts, should she heed them any mind?

The paddock had not looked to be within Polis, it had looked as if they had been in a smaller village instead, but Marie could not remember where they had been, or they had been there.

It dawned on her, that she did not only remember a single memory linked to the warhorses. The conversation she remembered with the commander had not contained their names, so she must have learned them later.

“What exactly do you remember?” Anya asked her charge, trying to divert her attention. She had not been present when Lexa had first spoken with the child about the horses, so she would not be able to recognize if anything was still missing from that memory.

“She asked me about the schooling system on the Ark” Marie remarked, face once again scrunched up in thought “She told me, how early she started her training. I remember thinking, that I would never be able to catch up. I was upset because of that and then you collected me” Her memory stopped there “…I think for dinner or something”.

Anya nodded “Yes. You were quite and broody for hours until you told me, what it was that was bothering you”.

Marie frowned, not remembering telling the general about her worries “I can’t remember that…”

“It will probably come back to you” Anya reassured the girl with a hopeful tone.

Marie remembered that Ontari had told her that she had been very close to the general and the commander before she lost her memory. Right now, she could not imagine confiding to the hard Trikru woman. The only one she had even remotely told anything personal in her time with the queen had been Ontari and she suddenly longed to speak with the older girl again.

“Can I visit Ontari again?” Marie finally asked after long moments of silently contemplating if to ask or not. The general had allowed her before, but that did not mean, she would be allowed again.

Anya nodded with another sigh, Abby had predicted that Marie might feel inclined to spend time with the older nightblood girl and had strongly advised them on allowing the contact. “Do you remember the way to her room?” the general asked.

Marie thought for a moment, but shook her head. She guessed that she would have been able to find it with some trial and error, but the general had asked her to speak honestly to her. She had not been mistreated since arriving in the capitol, the general had reassured her, that she would never have to fear a hand raised against herself in anger as punishment, but Marie found that hard to believe. Still, she instinctively wished to please the woman, who seemed to be her primary caretaker for now.

“Once you remember your way to her room, you can visit her on the same condition that goes for the stables” Anya added after a moment of hesitation. The Ice Nation nightblood had proven herself by the pledge she had made to Lexa and her compassion for Marie was too honest to be faked either.

Surprise was evident on the child’s face when she looked up at the general, but genuine gratitude flashed through her grey eyes as well.

Anya knew that it would be imperative for them to regain Marie’s trust gradually, so she thought it to be a step in the right direction. Internally the general hoped that Marie would not need to return to TonDC or the Ark to help her in regaining her memory, now that they were preparing for war, such a trip could not be made right now. But taking the girl with them, once they left Polis to lead the army to Azgeda, was highly risky as well. None of them could predict how Marie would react, if she was faced once again with queen Nia, even Abby had been hesitant to make a prediction.

Their way back into the tower passed in silence, but Marie nodded in gratitude to the general once they reached the floor of the prisoners.

Ontari looked slightly startled for a second at their arrival, but her dark eyes flashed with understanding at the general’s imploring gaze. The nightblood would not let Marie do something reckless which she would regret later and she would not let her run away as well.

Ontari was even more surprised when she heard the general’s footsteps clinking away from her door.

“You look troubled” Ontari observed after long moments of silence, the girl had looked ready to bolt at any second and she had kept her voice soft and light.

Marie had stood within her room, gazing at the wall, as if she was miles away with her thoughts. The girl startled visibly “I start to regain memories…” she said.

“That is good” Ontari surmised with a nod. Marie still did not look changed from the way she had acted under the queen, so she doubted that the younger girls had regained many memories yet.

Marie told her what she remembered without being prompted to, it even sounded as if the girl needed to retell it desperately.

“If you came here to ask if your memory is true, I cannot help you there” Ontari said, once the younger girl’s voice had trailed off. “We had not known each other back then” the nightblood added when she noticed the apparent confusion within Marie’s eyes.

But Marie shook her head “I know … It had not been in Polis … I do not know where, but it was not Polis. I remember you said, we met in Polis” the girl countered with a slight hint of annoyance.

“What is so troubling to you about that memory then?” Ontari inquired softly. She had learned already that pressuring the younger girl for answers did not always work. But the girl had sought her out, so it was obvious she wished to talk to her.

When Marie remained silent for long moments, Ontari sighed, maybe her assumptions had been wrong about the reason for the girl’s presence.

A Skykru doctor had been to see her a few hours prior. Ontari had been startled by her appearance, but the woman had not come on her own, the commander had been there briefly and explained that the woman was here to help Marie, so Ontari had listened to what she had had to say. The woman had asked her if she had been subjected to the same treatment as Marie and Ontari had been sure then that the queen truly had done something worse to the younger child during the nights of her absence; she had quickly denied that the same had ever occurred to her. The Skykru doctor had proclaimed that Marie might feel most secure in her presence, as she had witnessed and experienced some of the same trauma. Ontari highly doubted that to be the case, they had not grown particularly close again since she arrived back at the queen, but maybe she had been wrong in her assessment. She had reassured the woman, that she of course wished to aid in Marie’s recovery and she had patiently listened to her advice on how to interact with the girl in the immediate future.

“You can sit, you know” Ontari offered in a kind tone, sitting upright on the bed and thus making room for the younger girl. She motioned between the free space on the bed and a chair, giving the younger girl options to choose from.

Marie looked unsure and indecisive for a moment, the mask of calm and self-assurance cracking slightly, before she sat down on the free space of the bed. She did not feel threatened by the dark-haired girl and she knew that Ontari had taken a few lashings from the queen, just to spare her.

“You do not need to tell me, what is troubling you, if you do not want to” Ontari reassured, giving the younger girl a soft smile in acknowledgment after she sat down beside her. There was still enough space between them, so that their bodies were not touching, but the chair would have been even closer from her. “I am here to listen, if you wish to discuss something though. Otherwise we can just sit in silence, whatever you want” Ontari added, as she remembered what the Skykru doctor had advised.

 

 

 

 

Chapter 17: Chapter 161 - 170

Chapter Text

Chapter 161

They had sat some time in total silence, the only sound their quite breaths between them. Ontari would not have described Marie’s company as uncomfortable, but it was obvious in the deep tension holding Marie’s body upright, that the younger girl was uncomfortable at least.

Ontari was internally debating if it would be better to simply send the girl from her room and back to the general or if she should try once again to get Marie to speak about why she had sought her out in the first place. On the other hand, she had promised to try to help the younger girl and if her simple solitude was, what Marie needed right now, Ontari would continue sitting with her in silence for however long Marie wanted to stay.

Marie was surprised that Ontari did not press her to speak up again, but she was deeply thankful to the older girl for offering her time.

Marie did not know, why she was feeling so lost and insecure all of a sudden. It had been so easy to be with the queen. She had always known what was required of her and she had not been needed to think about anything. She had been so sure, that assassinating the commander would be what she needed to do for the queen and it confused her even more, that she was slowly starting to question this order.

Ontari had looked sincerer when she had pledged her vow to Lexa, than Marie could remember her looking at the queen. Her dark eyes had always been carefully blank in the presence of the queen, while they were expressive now, as if the older girl regarded it safer to show her emotions here than with the queen.

The longer Marie sat next to Ontari, she felt herself relax gradually over time. She started fiddling with the hem of her shirt, lost within her own thoughts.

“I don’t know why I am feeling so …” Marie started to say, but trailed off again without finishing her thought.

“Lost?” Ontari suggested softly, keeping her expression open and watching the younger girl carefully. She could fathom what Marie was going through, at least partly.

“Yeah” Marie nodded after surprise flashed over her features.

Ontari let her hand brush over the younger girl’s outstretched arm softly, as she tried to summaries her experiences after being brought back to Polis. She noticed how Marie tensed again after the first subtle touch, but just as she was thinking about increasing the space between them again, Marie finally relaxed again.

“I have been brought up under the queen’s tutelage, after I have been snatched away from my parents…” Ontari retold, what she had already told Marie weeks ago.

“Do you remember them?” Marie interrupted her curiously.

Ontari shook her head slightly “If I try to really hard, I can remember faint details of them, but nothing complete”.

Marie nodded “I wonder, how my parents have been…” she said faintly.

Ontari smiled slightly. They had never spoken in depths about the girl’s early childhood and she did not know if the commander or the general might know more about that.

“I was younger than you were, when I was brought to Nia” Ontari continued calmly, diverting Marie’s attention quickly.

A flash of horror ghosted over the girl’s face at that thought.

“I became strong, just like you did” Ontari surmised with a sad note to her tone “I have suffered under the queen’s fists and blows just like you did. But I have been with her for years. I did believe within the accuracy of her words, just like you are doing now. But I had to recognize that Nia was not right in everything. I have been nothing more than her loyal puppet.”

Marie looked confused and deeply conflicted at hearing the nightblood girl speak so bluntly and clearly contradicting everything which she had been made to believe under the queen’s violent force.

“But she cares for me… does she not?” Marie asked, voice faint and quivering.

“The queen only cares for herself” Ontari countered almost sourly, but she kept her expression kind and understanding.

“And you think the commander does not?” Marie asked after long moments. The girl had subconsciously started to lean closer to Ontari and their arms were touching now.

“You have seen how the commander handles complaints of her people today” Ontari reasoned calmly.

Marie nodded thoughtfully.

“I know how deeply Lexa and Anya both care for you” Ontari reassured the younger girl. Marie might not have been ready to hear and process such before, but she doubted the girl would believe the sentiment on the first occasion.

Disagreement appeared on the younger girl’s features, doubt easily to identify within her grey eyes.

“You have not seen how they reacted to the news of Echo bringing you to Nia” Ontari explained after a moment. “They both mourned for you” Ontari added “You do not mourn someone, you do not care for”.

Marie listened to the nightbloods words and she remembered Gustus’ words from earlier “Gustus had one of the braids, the queen had cut of from my hair. He said that Anya and the commander carry one as well with them”. The girl’s voice sounded even slightly awed, as if she could not fathom this care of kind.

Ontari’s dark eyes were deeply saddened as she gazed down at the girl’s blonde head, she knew that Marie would have truly lost the understanding of what love was supposed to be. She could not see Marie’s face anymore, as the younger girl was leaning it against her shoulder at the moment.

“I am sure that both of them would have kept one of your braids” Ontari agreed instantly “But I doubt that they have nothing else as keepsakes”. She recognized the girl’s dark green coat which must have been kept in store in Polis.

“But what about the queen now…?” Marie asked, peering up at the older girl. Her features still portrayed her confusion and sense of helpless floating.

Ontari quickly shook her head, as she wound one arm around the girl’s smaller body, giving her a tight one-armed hug “Forget about her, Marie” she intoned seriously.

“I don’t think I can” Marie said, voice quivering strongly and a shiver ran through her whole frame “I can’t forget the feeling of her fingers …” the child’s voice gave out and from the shaking of Marie’s body, Ontari was sure, that she had begun to cry.

Ontari tightened her arm around the girl and switched her position, so that she could truly hug the younger girl tightly to her own body “It is alright, Marie, she cannot hurt you any longer” she tried to sooth the girl.

Even after the queen had kept Marie with her overnight, Ontari had not seen her cry even once. The girl had been visibly shaken and upset, but she had not responded to Ontari trying to offer her any comfort at all. She had only closed herself off completely from the older girl as her response. So, she desperately hoped that Marie opening up to her was a sign of progress. Ontari had no idea on what to really tell the younger girl, nothing would ever make right what been done to her.

Marie was crying in earnest now and she had fisted her hands into Ontari’s shirt. Ontari kept on stroking over her hair and whispered reassurances to the younger girl, promising her that they would not ever let the queen touch her ever again. Ontari was certain the general and the commander would kill Nia with their bare hands, before they ever let their charge into the vicinity of Nia. Truthfully, Ontari was relatively sure, she would be aiding them and not the queen. A small part of her mind had not wanted to accept that Nia would truly stoop so low and fought to keep a small sliver of admiration for the queen within her mind.

It seemed to take forever before Marie’s tears finally ran dry and only slight sobbing remained. When Marie straightened again, a blush coloured her cheek at the fact that she had broken down like that.

Ontari squeezed the girl’s shoulders reassuringly, before she let go of her completely “It is alright, Marie, nothing to be ashamed of”.

Marie hastily whipped at her cheeks, trying to erase the visible signs of her tears and her weakness. She wanted to believe to Ontari’s words, she desperately wanted to believe her, but she was so confused.

“Thank you …” Marie said in a faint soft tone. She was grateful that the nightbloods dark eyes were free of judgement, but only showed honest compassion.

Ontari smiled at the younger girl reassuringly “You can come and see me, whenever you wish”.

Marie nodded against a sudden lump in her throat and turned abruptly, leaving the room without another word.

She felt the guards watching her, but no one approached her or intercepted her on her way. The way back to the top level of the tower was simple enough that she did not need any help to find back to the general’s quarters.

Marie stood in front of the doors indecisively for a moment, as she glanced in the direction of the commander’s quarters, something subconsciously pulled her in the direction, but Anya had told her firmly to return to her quarters after leaving Ontari. She hovered in front of the door for another moment, the guards were already eying her, as she raised her fist to knock and let it fall down to her side again, several times.

Marie startled strongly, when Anya suddenly appeared behind her “There is no need to knock to enter the quarters we share” the general told her nonchalantly, while opening the door and getting in.

Marie watched the woman mutely, a slight blush on her cheeks as she shuffled inside after her.

Anya noticed how the girl’s eyes looked suspiciously puffy, as if she had cried. She itched to prop the girl for what she had spoken about with Ontari. Although irrational she felt a slight surge of jealousy for the Ice Nation nightblood, it was apparent Marie trusted her more deeply at the moment and she did not know, how to fix that. She should probably be more grateful that it seemed that their charge was starting to confide into anyone.

Before Anya had made up her mind on how to ask Marie about her conversation with Ontari, a knock on the door announced the arrival of handmaidens. The general had ordered for a bath to be prepared for Marie. The girl had always liked the relaxation of a bath and had argued more than once with her and Lexa to let her soak in the steaming water for much longer than necessary to clean herself. She had teased her previous second about the fact that her one indulgence in enjoying extensive bathing seemed to have already rubbed off on the girl.

Marie watched the handmaidens carry several buckets filled with steaming water inside of their bathroom. She let her gaze travel over every single one of them, trying to recognize one of them and secretly hoping to see the green-eyed woman again, but she did not recognize a single one out of them.

She tried to subdue the frown wanting to settle on her features. Marie thought that she should have just stayed with Ontari until someone would have collected her for dinner. She had noticed that a second bed had been added into the quarters together with a chest for clothes at its foot, so Marie assumed that she now had her own bed. The knowledge of having her own sleeping space now calmed her slightly, although she felt uncomfortable with the thought of the general taking a bath now that she was present.

Marie remembered how the general had assured her in the morning that no one here expected of her to “make them feel good” as she phrased it within her mind. Although Anya’s words had been delivered in a sincere tone, Marie still subconsciously doubted their truth. She had also reinforced her earlier words, no one would be punishing her in any physical form within the tower and punishments would only be decided by the general, the commander and the flamekeeper, she still had to be re-introduced to.

Marie was not sure yet, what she could truly believe in now. The royal guard of the queen had never been friendly or gentle with her, their trainings had been harsh, but their punishments for failure had mostly consisted of denied food and extra training, a slap at most. The queen herself had introduced her to a lashing as a form of punishment. Marie truly hoped that the general had spoken the truth and she would never be subjected to one ever again.

Training with Anya had been different from training with the royal guard. They had rarely cared if they had caused her injury and she had only been looked after, if she had been unable to stand up again or could not hold a weapon any longer. The general seemed to have stopped most of her attacks after she had drawn blood and the wounds she had gotten during the training were all solely superficial and she barely felt them at all.

Marie was pulled out of her thoughts by Anya addressing her in an even tone “Your bath is ready…” a slight tease seemed to be hidden within her brown eyes as her voice trailed off.

Marie frowned for a moment in apparent confusion, had she missed the general taking her own bath altogether? The woman’s hair still looked slightly in disarray from training and had most definitely not been washed yet.

“Abby has given me a special kind of salve to be rubbed into your back after your bath. There is an oil in it as well, it should help with the scarring” the general explained, ignoring her charge’s confusion and gently giving her a push into the direction of the bathroom.

Marie wondered why the woman’s hand on her back had not felt unwelcome, but she went into the bathroom in silence.

She felt the presence of the general follow her inside of the room and she had to take a rather deep breath before she started to disrobe. She would have felt more comfortable if Anya would have stepped out of the room, but it looked as if she planned on staying with her.

“I want to look at your wounds” Anya explained calmly when she noticed the girl hesitating before taking of her shirt.

Marie frowned slightly, but nodded with a cautious expression “They are barely scratches” she insisted with a sullen tone.

Anya raised a brow questioningly at the girl, but when Marie remained silent, she crouched down in front of the girl and gently took one of her arms into her hands, turning the limp around to better inspect the grace on her upper arm. The skin did not look inflamed yet and it had obviously not bled for long, it would scab over quickly.

Marie watched the woman inspect every little scratch she had acquired during training with a constant frown on her features. A part of her felt, dare she name it, touched at the apparent display of care, while another part of her felt slightly annoyed to be treated like a child, unable to care for herself. Something else which ghosted through her mind was the question of why she did not feel her skin crawl now? She was naked in front of the general and although the woman was touching her, it felt entirely different and somehow oddly familiar as well.

The general even held her hand as she climbed into the large bathing tube, probably to keep her from slipping on the wet metal surface and hurting herself. She guessed that she could have done without the help, but it somehow felt good to be cared for like this as well.

“Anya…” Marie addressed the general in a soft and unsure tone.

The woman had stayed in the bathroom and taken position behind her charge. Marie’s hair was in a terrible condition, slightly knotted and dull, as if it had not been cared for at all. Anya had questioned herself, if it was the right choice to stay behind and help the girl with her hair. Marie would undoubtedly have been able to give it a proper wash on her own, but she had already done so quiet a number of times and it had felt like a good opportunity to show to the girl that accepting help and physical closeness was alright and did not have to have bad consequences.

“Yes?” Anya asked, tone soft and inquiring. She had already wetted the girl blonde hair after detangling the old braids, which had taken a rather long time. The bathroom smelled strongly of the soap, Marie had enjoyed the most before. The general was working a mixture of different oils into the girl’s blonde hair, attempting to get it to shine again. It had felt more like a heap of straw instead of soft locks.

“I spoke with Ontari earlier…” the girl started to say, but trailed off again.

Anya made a noise of acknowledgment, wondering why the girl felt the need to state such an obvious thing in the first place, but she guessed that Marie had actually intended to say something else entirely.

“…she said that we have been or are the queen’s puppets…” Marie’s voice trailed off again. The confusion and the reluctance to believe in such a sentiment was evident in her shaking tone.

Anya’s fingers stilled for a second, before she continued their movements through Marie’s blonde hair, which had usually calmed her before. She took a moment to think of a fitting answer, but Marie continued to speak before she finished thinking.

“…she said, I should forget her” Marie said and although Anya could not see the girl’s features from her position, she was sure they were twisted into a deep frown.

“… she said, she cared for me…” Marie continued, before Anya could agree with Ontari’s piece of advice.

Now it was Anya’s time to frown. She doubted that Ontari would have worded such a sentiment in the past tense, both Lexa and she were sure that Marie was the sole reason for the nightblood to take the risk of returning to the capitol. Anger coursed through her mind at the thought that the sentiment should apply to the queen. “Nia only cares for herself” she did not quiet manage to ban the growl from her tone.

Anya was slightly surprised by the snort that pulled from Marie’s lips.

“Ontari said the same thing…” Marie breathed back and although she still sounded unsure and confused, a sense of humour seemed to ring within her words.

Anya carefully rinsed out the oils out of the girl’s blonde hair. She was satisfied with herself, Marie’s body looked relaxed and she had stopped flinching under her touch completely. A slight and shy smile seemed to ghost over the girl’s lips as she accepted a towel from the general, before she stepped out of the bathing tube.

“I will apply the ointment after you have dried off” Anya said, before she turned around to step out of the room and give the girl a few moments of privacy.

Marie’s soft voice stopped the general in her tracks. “Do you truly care for me…?” the girl’s tone was so low it was barely distinguishable, but her grey eyes seemed desperate for a positive answer.

Anya had turned back around immediately and she crouched down in front of the girl, ignoring the slightly startled look flashing over her features for a second, she gently cupped the girl’s cheeks with her hands “I love you very much, Marie”. To give words to such a sentiment still felt slightly alien to Anya, but it was clear the girl needed to hear such words now more than ever.

The first honest smile since her return appeared on Marie’s face, it was still shaky and fleeting though. “I am glad to be back” she said softly.

Anya caressed her cheek for a moment, before she cleared her throat and stood up again, repeating the order for Marie to dry off and get back into the main room, so that she could apply the ointment to the girl’s skin.

 

Chapter 162

Marie remained in the bathroom far longer than she actually needed to dry herself off. The general’s order to come back into the main room and lay down on her bed, still ringing in her ears. Although the woman had told her that she wished to apply some kind of ointment to her skin, Marie did not feel well with the concept.

Why would scars need to be treated anyway? The skin on her back had not bled for a few weeks, so everything must have been scarred over by now.

Being naked with the intent to get into a bathing tube, suddenly felt a whole world different from having to lay down naked in front of the general.

But she knew that stalling for time would probably not work forever and the general had already seen her naked when she had inspected her wounds before the bath, so Marie took a calming deep breath, straightening herself and put on a calm front, before she stepped out of the bathroom.

Anya had waited more or less patiently in their quarters for Marie to join her. She understood that the girl would probably be nervous to allow her to face her naked back. In a way it pained her more than she had expected to see that her charge did not trust her anymore. She internally contemplated if it would be better to call for one of the healers to apply the ointment, maybe Marie would feel safer with “a professional”.

But the girl appeared calm and collected as she set foot out of the bathroom. Her blonde hair was still damp and loose, it was already visible that it looked softer and shinier again. They would need to adapt the girl’s hairstyle to accommodate for the trademark red ribbons to be included in her shorter hair, which decreased the possibilities of braiding it considerably. Anya banned that train of thought from her mind, the girl’s hair would grow back over time after all.

Marie laid down on the added bed facedown and mutely stared at the general, waiting for the woman to make her first movement.

Anya cleared her throat once again, before she opened the jar of ointment and warmed some of it between her fingers.

The girls back looked horrible, huge parts of her tattoo were now nearly unrecognizable due extensive scarring. Abby was probably correct and the skin would need to be treated to remain soft or the girl could become problems with moving comfortably.

Although Marie was obviously trying hard to remain calm and not show how much the whole situation bothered her, the girl still tensed visibly as soon as the general’s fingers made contact with her skin.

Anya tried to make quick work of applying the ointment to the girl’s back and she did not pause before applying it to her upper thighs as well, asking the girl to turn around, so that she could spread some of it on her front as well. The girl’s breathing was visibly quickened and the knuckles of her fingers were wide under her skin, from the way she had clenched them to fists at her side.

“You can dress again” Anya said evenly, taking a step back and cleaning her fingers on a rag, turning her back slightly to give the girl a sense of privacy. She supressed a sigh, it was obvious the girl’s relaxation from the bath had all but vanished again.

Marie was quick to follow that order, but her movements paused once Anya spoke again.

“We will dine within the commander’s quarters” the general said firmly.

Surprise flashed over the girl’s face momentarily. Marie frowned slightly, if she truly had been her first, she would have been within her quarters before. She remembered that Lexa had already talked with her privately before, but Marie was still anxious to be faced with her again.

“Sit there” Anya directed her charge and motioned to a chair.

Marie frowned slightly at the order but complied wordlessly.

“I will do your hair” Anya explained, which only increased Marie’s frown.

“I can do my hair myself!” Marie snapped apparently angry.

Anya raised a brow inquiringly, although Abby had told them that mood swings and snappiness were to be expected, Lexa and she had agreed that they would not take an attitude from their charge. Marie would need to learn her new limits quickly and she could not be allowed to act over them in public.

Marie’s anger faded as quickly as it had surfaced and it was apparent the girl was worrying of how the general would handle insolence.

“Watch your tone, Marie” Anya reprimanded her charge in a sharp tone and the girl nodded immediately, casting her eyes down.

Anya sighed under her breath as she took a few ribbons out of a pocket in her trousers. Lexa had sent the ribbons to the general in the morning, they would need to show Marie’s place continued as the commander’s second.

Marie’s grey eyes snapped to the red ribbons, she recognized the red fabric immediately. They had been woven into her hair, before the queen had Echo cut them off.

“You will need another hairstyle now, that they are shorter, until they have grown back” Anya explained, voice still strict. Lexa and she had agreed, that she would try out something, which could still be changed later if the commander did not like what she had come up with.

After Anya had treated the girl’s blonde hair with oils, her hair was soft again to the touch and Anya did not have any difficulties to weave them into a few braids. The red ribbons contrasted starkly with her blonde shining hair and the girl’s face looked even sharper now that her hair was pulled away from her face. Anya pulled out a few strands around the girl’s forehead to slightly gentle her sharpened features again.

“All done” Anya said after a few moments of silence. Marie had sat still obediently and simply let the general work on her hair; the woman’s fingers had been much gentler than Echo’s had ben when the Ice Nation warrior had impatiently taught her on how to tame her hair.

Marie walked over to the bathroom and inspected her reflection in a huge shard of an old mirror, which had been propped up against a wall. A slight smile graced her lips, she liked how Anya had styled her hair.

Anya leaned against the door frame, watching Marie’s mannerism with amusement. It was good to see a little bit of her old self within the girl again.

“It is time to go now, Marie” Anya called the girl out of her thoughts after a few more minutes. The general felt anticipation settle in her mind, she knew how important it was that Marie would get along with Lexa without trying to kill the general. Lexa would probably be deeply disappointed as well, if the girl did not start remembering their connection soon.

It was obvious Marie was nervous as well, as the girl tried to pull up a calm and unreadable front. Although Marie had seen the commander in the meeting earlier at the same day, being invited into the commander’s private quarters seemed entirely different. She was not aware of a protocol to follow on how to treat the commander in a more private setting.

“Have I been there before?” Marie stopped Anya hesitantly, before the general could open the door to step out into the corridor.

Anya frowned slightly “If you mean within the commander’s quarters by “there”, then yes, you have” she explained and after a moment the woman added “We have lived within Lexa’s quarters for weeks”.

“But you have not been commander…” Marie contradicted with a furrowed brow. It did not make sense to her that they should have been living within the commander’s private quarters for weeks. A horrible thought flashed through her mind and she felt her breathing quicken against her will. What if the commander had demanded “services” from her, like the queen had?

Anya regarded the girl in silence for a moment, it was obvious that her thoughts must be going head over heels. She tried to put her hands onto Marie’s shoulders, trying to calm the girl’s increasing panic, but the child flinched away from her touch. “There is nothing to fear, Marie” Anya tried to reassure the girl with words “You have not done anything wrong and we are only going to dine together”.

Marie’s panic seemed to ebb away as quickly as it had surfaced, or the girl was hiding it much better after a few deep breaths.

Marie followed the general in silence through the hall and she would have liked it better, if their quarters had been farer away, which would have afforded her more time to pull herself back together.

Gustus and a man she did not recognize, she internally wondered if she had seen him before, stood post at the doors to the commander’s quarters. The burly guard sent her a friendly smile and Marie subtly inclined her head in acknowledgment.

She felt her heart hammering strongly against her chest as the doors were pulled open and the grand quarters were revealed.

Anya walked through the door without missing a beat and the general shortly bandied a look with her former second.

Although Lexa seemed to try to appear relaxed, she was anything but.

Clarke was in the bathroom, trying to keep the wolf there for at least a few minutes.

“Anya” Lexa greeted her mentor audibly, before she turned her green eyes to Marie and repeated her welcome. A slight smile graced her features and her eyes were soft.

Marie seemed to freeze in her step, as she was addressed by the commander and she instantly looked to Anya for guidance. The queen had of course not prepared her to truly interact with the commander and if she were to follow Ontari’s advice, she would forget the queen’s instructions anyway.

Scratching noises from beyond the bathroom door pulled Lexa’s attention from Marie only the beat of a second later. Her smile had faltered visibly and a surge of disappointment coursed through her veins. Lexa had hoped beyond reason that the girl would remember her as instantly as she had remembered her connection to Anya.

“Let her out, Clarke” the commander called in the direction of the bathroom and the door opened a second later.

Risha squished herself through the door before it was fully opened and the wolf instantly ran to Marie.

Marie’s eyes widened in alarm and she took a frightened step back, as a wolf approached her in a fast pace. Had the commander kept the beast here to have her killed by it?

When Marie shrieked in obvious fear of the animal, the wolf stopped directly in front of the girl. It looked as if Risha was inspecting her human with a slightly tilted head.

Marie had taken a few steps to get distance to the beast and to get closer to Anya. She hoped that her first would not let herself be killed like that.

The frown on Anya’s face made Marie pause though and the girl’s voice was barely audible as she asked “Have I known the wolf?”

She cautiously looked at the animal again from a safer distance. The wolf did not look particularly fearsome, if anything it looked as confused, as Marie was feeling.

Anya nodded with a slight sigh “She was yours” she answered the girl’s question.

Marie’s eyes widened noticeably and she fully returned her attention to the wolf now. Cautiously Marie crouched down in front of the wolf and they looked into each other’s eyes for long silent moments.

“She has grown so much…” Marie said after long moments, as a few hazy memories returned to her mind. Marie could recall finding the small cub next to its dead mother, she did not remember why she had been there or what had happened before. But she knew that Anya had told her that the commander would make a decision.

The wolf was wagging its tail at her and when Marie stretched out her fingers to let them glide through the wolf’s fur, the animal licked at them. Marie giggled slightly at the feeling of the wet tongue and something clicked in her mind again.

Marie let the wolf lick her fingers before she looked to the commander “You have let me keep her” she addressed the woman. Not dressed in the regalia of the commander, Lexa looked smaller and softer and just like any other young woman.

Risha leapt slightly forward and licked the girl’s face enthusiastically, Marie shrieked in reaction and started to giggle, lightly shoving at the wolf to get her out of her face.

Lexa and Anya shared a look, both feeling relieved to see Marie’s childishness reappear, but the moment was broken when Clarke let out an audible chuckle.

Marie tensed immediately, suddenly aware again of the three adults watching her. Her features hardened and her grey eyes dulled again.

“What do you remember about Risha?” Lexa addressed the girl in an even tone, keeping her features soft and open. The commander hoped that Marie would recall their interactions concerning Risha, while Anya had been against keeping the wolf from the beginning, she had seen no harm in it. The fact that Marie glanced to Anya, before giving an answer to her question, felt like a physical slap to Lexa.

“Just finding her as a cub, but she is older now obviously” Marie reasoned with a slight furrow to her brow “Risha is her name?”

“You have named her yourself” Anya remarked not quiet hiding the sigh from her voice.

Marie nodded, grey eyes thoughtful, but she kept on lightly stroking over Risha’s muzzle, to the wolf’s obvious pleasure.

“The food will get cold” Clarke interjected, once it became clear that Marie would simply stare at nothing in silence until someone addressed her again.

Anya nodded and motioned Marie over to the table. Alira had had a small feast prepared for Marie’s official return and the table was laden with a huge variety of dishes the girl had once liked.

It was obvious quickly that Marie was overwhelmed both with the overabundance with food and how to act now.

The girl was extremely stiff in her chair and although her outer demeanour portrayed indifference, her fingers shook slightly and her grey eyes darted between them nervously without stopping even for a second.

Although Marie’s eyes kept on returning to the commander, she seemed to orientate herself more strongly at Anya, copying what the general was eating.

Conversation was slow going around the table. Marie contributed only if she was directly asked something and her answers were curt and clipped, the girl was not unkind but obviously not willing to engage in conversation as well.

Clarke had tried in vain to keep the conversation somewhat flowing. While Lexa and Anya both were relatively comfortable in silence, it granted on the blonde’s nerves. She had watched the commander’s hopefulness vanish from her green eyes as the meal trudged on and it was no surprise to her, that Lexa excused herself quickly with the excuse of having another meeting.

Marie thought she would be relived to return to the general’s quarters, but the opposite was the case. She felt oddly dissatisfied with how the dinner had gone. Marie had hoped to get regain memories pertaining the commander, but nothing had come back to her.

Anya had bustled around the room, while Marie sat tersely on the edge of her bed, picking at the hem of her shirt.

The general regarded her charge with a frown. They had been so used to the girl’s chirpy nature, that the silence around her was more than a stark contrast.

“Get ready to sleep” Anya addressed her charge in a strict tone and watched how Marie immediately seemed to jump into action. It was obvious that the girl was not feeling at home with her anymore and Anya had no idea on how to regain her charge’s trust. Abby had said that the girl’s ability to trust anyone would probably be severely impaired after what she had suffered through.

Marie did not say a single word while she washed herself and returned into the main room, she only said a faint “good night” before lying down and turning her back to the general.

The day had been a whirlwind of emotion for Marie and the girl was exhausted, so she fell asleep quickly.

Unfortunately, she did not sleep peacefully for long, nightmares invaded her dreams after only a few short hours of rest. Marie woke with a start, gasping for air silently, shivering and drenched in a cold sweat. Her grey eyes were wide and she glanced over to the other bed quickly, praying in her mind that she had not woken the general, but Anya seemed to be asleep still.

Marie tried to calm her frantically beating heart, but her shivering seemed to only increase as the seconds ticked by and even though she pulled the furs tighter around her body, a coldness settled into her bones that could not be thawed like that.

When she started to feel sick to her stomach again, Marie cautiously set her feet on the ground, trying to still her breathing and clear her mind of the memories haunting her mind. She kept her eyes hefted on the sleeping form of the general, looking for signs that she woke her up, but she remained still.

On almost silent feet Marie sneaked through the room, she had remembered the outline and did not crash into any pieces of furniture now. She opened the door to the quarter’s with shaking fingers and so ever slowly as to not make any unnecessary sounds, Marie slipped out into the hall.

 

 

 

 

 

 

Another warning: This and the next chapter will again contain references to rape and also suicidal thoughts.

 

Chapter 163

Anya woke suddenly to the sound of the door to her quarters being closed. She shot upright in the bed, her hands automatically grabbing the dagger she kept under her pillow. She could not spot movement in the dim light falling inside from the moon, the candles had all given out already.

Anya glanced over to Marie’s bed and found it empty. She immediately stood from the bed and walked over to the bathroom, but the door was open and Marie obviously not inside.

Without even thinking to dress herself again, Anya stepped out into the corridor hurriedly, trying to locate her charge.

Her brown eyes fell down the corridor to the doors of the commander’s quarters, but a guard standing post at her own door addressed her “She just entered the elevator. We did not know…” the young man trailed off.

Anya waved him off quickly and nodded in acknowledgment. The man did not comment on her lack of decent clothing, the general was only dressed in a threadbare shirt and a pair of underwear.

Anya could her the movement of the elevator when she stood in front of the contraption. Would Marie try to run away? With a sinking heart Anya realized that none of them had even fathomed that possibility. She hoped Marie would be seeking out Ontari instead, but she still felt irritated that the girl was already not telling her on where she was going.

Anya quickly travelled the stairs to the floor which held Ontari’s room and she could spot the doors of the elevator closing again, so she hoped Marie had truly left it here. She walked into the direction of Ontari’s room slower, she wished to see what Marie had planned to do.

The guards standing in front of the Ice Nation nightblood’s doors were obviously as confused as her own guard to see the young girl in the middle of the night, but they did not deny Marie access to the door.

Marie visibly hesitated for a moment, her outstretched fist hovering in front of the door, clearly wondering if she should knock. The girl must have decided against it and let her hand fall again, before simply pushing the door open.

The guards must have seen Anya approaching, but before they could address her, the general waved them away with a dismissive gesture. Anya strained her ears against the footsteps of the retreating guards.

Ontari’s room was dark, beside for a small sliver of moonlight falling inside through the small window and Ontari startled awake, feeling someone’s presence. Her first instincts were to protect herself, so the nightblood leaped up from the bed, pressing a dagger against the throat of the intruder.

Ontari abruptly let go, when she realized that the intruder was not a grown adult, but rather Marie.

“I could have killed you!” she snapped at the younger girl, feeling slightly shocked.

“Why do you have a dagger?” Marie asked with a frown, a hand ghosting over the shallow cut Ontari had made with the blade on her throat.

Ontari lighted a small fire in the fire place, which illuminated the room quickly. She stored the dagger again under her mattress and she commented “Just because the commander let me stay, does not mean that all the others will be happy to see me alive. I am Ice Nation, Marie, and there is going to be war soon”.

Marie’s frown deepened “Someone threatened you?” she asked, worry apparent in her voice.

Ontari slightly shook her head “Not yet. But I doubt it will be long. The commander’s protection will only do so much…” her voice trailed off and she noticed how the younger girl was only dressed in a loose shirt “Does the general know you are here, Marie?”

Marie bit her lip indecisively. She had not wanted to wake the woman, she still did not know if she would be punished for waking her. She had wanted to see Ontari and not Anya. So, she shook her head “I don’t think I woke her up”.

Ontari sighed audibly under her breath “You cannot sneak away like that, Marie” she reprimanded the younger girl lightly.

“You said I could see you anytime…” Marie remarked, accusation lacing her tone and her grey eyes shone wet suspiciously.

Ontari nodded quickly and took a step closer to Marie, cautiously placing her hands on the younger girl’s shoulders. Her voice was soft and reassuring as she answered “You can, Marie. But the general will be worried, if she finds you gone”.

Marie nodded with an almost sullen expression “I want to stay…” She did not wish to return to the general’s quarters.

Ontari sighed again “Lie down” she ordered “You are freezing”.

She watched the younger girl, as she complied with her order. It was obvious Marie must have been woken by a nightmare. The young girl looked pale and sweaty, her grey eyes wide and filled with fear, a slight shaking still running through her body.

Ontari hoped she could calm the girl down and bring her back to the general’s quarters afterwards. For some reason she was sure neither the general nor the commander would appreciate it, if she kept their charge with her overnight.

Ontari cautiously climbed into the bed beside Marie, trying in vain to keep some distance between them. The bed was too small to allow for that and Ontari carefully balanced on the edge, she nearly fell over though, when Marie turned around and buried her face against her neck.

Marie herself did not quiet understand why she had sought out Ontari and seemed to need her physical closeness now. But she had remembered how the older girl had calmed her when the queen had introduced her to physical punishments and she had slept encased in Ontari’s arms. Her fears and worries had only quitted then totally and although she had not allowed the older girl to comfort her since the queen had changed, she hoped that her comfort would help her now again.

Ontari felt Marie’s body shudder against herself, as the younger girl seemed to start crying.

“Ssshh” Ontari tried to sooth the upset girl, letting her fingers comb gently through her blonde hair and stroke over her back. “You are safe now, Marie” she repeated over and over again, until Marie seemed to calm slightly.

When it looked as if the younger girl was close to falling asleep, Ontari roused her gently “Marie, you need to return to the general’s quarters” she tried to reason with the girl softly.

Marie shook her head and her hands tightened, where they were fisted into Ontari’s shirt, and her voice had a whiny quality to it as she mumbled “Don’t want to… Can’t I stay here?”

“Marie…” Ontari sighed. She did not wish to have to send the younger girl away, but she knew Marie’s place was not here.

“You don’t want me to stay….” Marie’s voice was quivering and had gotten slightly higher, as she backed out of Ontari’s arms, leaning against the cold stone wall with accusative grey eyes.

Ontari sighed again. She knew that she should probably send Marie back to the general, but she also did not wish to disappoint the trust the younger girl seemed to have in her.

“I did not say that, Marie” Ontari insisted in a caring tone “But the general will surely be worried when she finds you gone” she said trying to appeal to the girl’s reason.

“I did not want to wake her” Marie shook her head and a slight sliver of fear seemed to ghost over her features.

Ontari frowned slightly “Marie, there is no need for you to fear the general…” she said and after the beat of a second added “…nor the commander, for that matter”.

Marie nodded with a thoughtful expression, but she remained silent.

“What upset you?” Ontari inquired in a gentle tone and took the younger girl’s hand, lightly pulling on them to pull her away from the cold wall and back into the bed.

“Anya…” Marie started to say and then trailed off again.

Anya stood in front of the not completely closed door to Ontari’s quarters and carefully listened to the conversation going on between the two girls. She could not help the growing sensation of jealousy that took root in her belly as it was obvious her charge preferred Ontari’s company right now.

“What of her?” Ontari asked again, letting her fingers draw soothing circles on the girl’s hand. She was absolutely sure that the general would not have physically hurt the younger girl, so she was not too worried about Marie’s answer.

“She said she loved me…” Marie breathed out softly and her grey eyes bore into Ontari’s dark ones with a deep desperation to understand swimming in them.

Ontari nodded with the ghost of a smile playing around her lips “I told you the general and the commander care deeply for you, Marie” she reminded the younger girl.

Marie nodded mutely, it was obvious she was still deeply upset though.

“You do not believe her?” Ontari checked in a cautious tone. She had no idea what had the younger girl so upset at the moment.

Marie immediately shook her head in denial “I don’t think she lied…” she said, and an expression of wonder passed over her features as she said “She made a tea for me when I was sick in the night. She was not angry that I woke her. Or I think she was not...”

“I doubt she was” Ontari agreed instantly, before Marie continued to speak.

“She looked after every small wound I got during training” the younger girl’s voice was tinted with honest confusion and surprise “And she washed and made my hair. She applied some kind of salve to help with the scarring as well. And she was upset…” a shadow seemed to pass over the girl’s features and Ontari felt her smaller hands starting to shake again.

“She was upset about what?” Ontari gently asked, trying to divert Marie’s attention from whatever was haunting her.

Marie’s grey eyes seemed to widen again and she stared down at their joined hands, before she ripped her own smaller hands away again, pulling her knees up to her chest.

“You don’t need to tell me” Ontari quickly reassured, alarmed at the girl’s reaction. She had not meant to deepen the girl’s turmoil.

Silence settled between them for a moment and Anya contemplated if she should just enter and order her charge to come back to their quarters, but something rooted her in her spot. She was relived to hear from Marie’s mouth that she did believe in her feelings, but she was confused what the problem might be, if Marie truly did believe her.

Marie’s grey eyes seemed to have dulled totally when she spoke up again, her voice sounded strangely monotonous and Ontari doubted she was aware of her position anymore. “Has the queen ever demanded you to make her feel good?”

Ontari swallowed forcefully when their eyes connected again and she could almost taste the other girl’s misery, it was so apparent at the moment, and she shook her head in denial “She did not”. Ontari herself had wondered already why Nia had never done the same to her and the only reason she had come up with had been that she had already been loyal and believing without the further need to be broken.

“She said that I have to. That it is my obligation. That you do that, if you care for each other…” Marie’s voice was laced with confusion and she had gotten paler again.

“Nia did not care…” Ontari interjected forcefully, voice raised slightly to make her point.

Marie nodded with a miserable expression “But if she did not care for me, why did she do it then…?” her voice sounded almost broken and tears fell from her eyes again.

Ontari shook her head, lost for words. She did not know what to tell the younger girl. She doubted it would be helpful to tell her that the queen’s only intent had been to break her spirit.

Marie seemed to gather herself surprisingly quickly and the tears stopped as fast as they had come. She still had curled into herself and she seemed to remember, why she had started to tell Ontari about it at all. “I tried to offer the same to Anya…” she explained and her grey eyes were completely confused again.

Ontari audibly sucked in a harsh breath. She could imagine that the general would have been highly upset by that.

“…she did not wish for me to service her like that. She said no one would make me do that ever again” Marie finished and after a moment she added “And she cried…why would she cry?”

Ontari nodded in obvious agreement to the first part of the younger girl’s words, but she faltered slightly at Marie’s question. She did not know exactly why the general would shed tears in response to that revelation, but she could fathom the reason. “Marie, she will probably feel that she failed you” she tried to reason gently with the younger girl.

Marie’s grey eyes clouded in confusion “But she has not hurt me” she insisted.

“I know” Ontari agreed “And you can be sure, that she never will either. But as far as I know, you separated during a hunting trip and you lost your memory afterwards. So, essentially, she will probably blame herself for leaving you on your own and not being able to protect you from Nia. I guess the commander will share the sentiment though.”

Marie seemed to contemplate her words for long moments “They did not command the queen to do anything to me…” She did know that what had happened to her was no one’s fault, but she still did not understand why the queen would hurt her in the first place. Had she done something to the queen?

“No, they did not” Ontari agreed again. She did not know how to explain to Marie better why both the general and the commander would feel guilty that Marie had ended in the queen’s hands.

“I don’t understand why the queen had made me make herself feel good and Anya does not want me to do that. If it is something you make for people you care for…” Marie repeated giving voice to her conflicting thoughts.

“Marie, Nia did not care for you in the sense care is meant to be” Ontari tried to instil in the young girl’s mind “She used you. She manipulated you and she hurt you. The general will not want you to service her sexually not because she does not love you, but rather because she truly loves you”.

Her words did not seem to have the effect Ontari had wished for them to have and the nightblood tried to explain herself better, when Marie’s confusion seemed to only increase. “Nia never cared for you, Marie. She only cares for herself and what others can do for her” she said forcefully “It is true that people who care for each other make themselves feel better…” Ontari tried to explain, feeling herself fumble with the words almost helplessly “…but there is a difference between a consensual sexual relationship between two adults and what Nia made you do, Marie. It is simply not the same.”

“Why not?” Marie interjected, voice sounding dejected and her grey eyes shone with helplessness.

“Because you did not want to share your body with Nia like that, Marie” Ontari answered quickly “The general and the commander care for you in a totally different way, Marie. They would not hurt and violate you like that”.

“But I did not fight back…” Marie said in a trembling tone and tears filled her grey eyes again. She remembered that the Skykru doctor had called it rape, that the queen had raped her. But did rape not mean that the victim had to fight back? Did it not mean she had sort of agreed to it because she had just participated?

Ontari felt her heart almost breaking for the younger girl and she felt utterly helpless to actually offer any real support to Marie. She desperately wished for the general or the commander, or even the Skykru doctor, to be there in her place, but it seemed Marie had chosen to confide to her. She tried to think of a fitting answer, but she asked instead “Have you told that to the general or anyone else?”

Marie shook her head in the negative and tightened her arms around her knees, pulling them more firmly against her chest and making herself even smaller.

Ontari sighed under her breath, she had feared exactly that answer. “You should speak to the general about that, Marie” she tried to reason with the younger girl and she had to fight against tears of her own, she felt so unprepared to help Marie at this very moment. Not a single one of all the lessons in fighting and surviving could have prepared her for a situation like this.

Marie quickly shook her head again. She did not wish to speak to anyone about it, she did not understand why she had even spoken up to Ontari at all. It was a conflict raging in her mind, on the one hand she desperately wanted to understand what had happened to her, and she knew she could not find the reason within her own mind, but she also did not wish to speak about it.

Ontari nodded, taking a deep breath and she tried to remember what the Skykru doctor had lectured her on during the day on what to tell Marie, if the girl would confide to her. “Did you want to make Nia feel good?” she asked finally, trying to argument with logic with the younger girl.

Marie immediately shook her head.

“Did it make you feel good to have to do it?” Ontari inquired, although she knew the answer already.

Marie’s shaking got more pronounced again and she disagreed almost frantically.

“What do you think would have happened if you had not complied with Nia’s orders?” Ontari asked softly keeping her dark eyes compassionate.

Marie frowned for a moment, before she shuddered “She would have killed you and me…”

Ontari frowned now “Did Nia threaten you with death?” She had known the queen worked with threats, but she had not thought that she would have been included in that, nor that Marie would have truly tried to safe her then.

Marie nodded “She said that she would make me kill you and kill me afterwards”.

Ontari nodded with a cautious expression. She was relatively sure, that Nia would not have followed through with that, but it was obvious Marie had believed so.

“I thought about it…” Marie said, almost inaudibly and Anya had to strain her hearing to catch the girl’s soft words, her heart falling into the pit of her stomach at the implication of her charge’s words.

“About what?” Ontari inquired with a frown. She doubted Marie would have wished to kill her, but she had no idea just how deeply Nia had wound herself into Marie’s fragile mind.

“Letting her kill me” Marie confessed and after a moment she added “Or ending it myself…”

Ontari sucked in a harsh breath and her own eyes widened in disbelieve.

“She caught me…” Marie continued, voice sounding hollow and far away again and Ontari waited for the younger girl to continue.

“…I had been left alone in her quarters for a few moments and she had left a dagger on the table” Marie narrated, eyes unseeing and horror etched deeply into her features “It would have been so easy to slice my own throat open and end it…but the queen returned earlier…I had not heard her return…she was so angry…that was when she said I would have to kill you before she would give me the mercy of death…”

 

 

Chapter 164

Ontari had paled at the younger girl’s words and she was surprised that Marie still had enough compassion left in her to continue living just to save her.

Anya felt a part of herself shatter at her charge’s admission. Abby had cautioned them on the fact the Marie might be having suicidal tendencies, but she had not wished to believe that Nia had succeeded in completely destroying the in love with life part of Marie.

“…she said I could not simply kill myself and take me away from her…she needed me, she said…she…” Marie broke down completely and Ontari wound her arms around the younger girl, enveloping her in her strong arm.

“Marie, you need to speak with the general about all of this” Ontari tried to repeat to Marie with urgency in her tone. She would not betray the younger girl and relay what she had been told to the general herself, but she simply was not able to provide the aid, Marie obviously needed.

Marie shook her head again, backing away from the nightblood’s hug.

“Why not?” Ontari asked, desperation seeping into her tone. “The general and the commander both want to help you” she insisted strongly.

“I know…” Marie said in an almost broken tone “You don’t understand…”

“Then explain it to me” Ontari requested softly “They care for you, deeply, Marie”.

“That is the point!” Marie retorted hotly, suddenly angry at the older girl.

Ontari looked at the girl with a frown, not understanding her sudden outburst at all.

“They care for me, yes” Marie agreed, voice raised and angry “But I don’t remember. I do NOT remember!”

Ontari’s frown had only deepened, they all knew that Marie had not regained her memories yet, so she truly failed to understand the problem.

“You have not seen how disappointed they are, that I don’t remember” Marie confessed, a bitterness in her tone now “I try to remember, but the more I try, I feel like the less makes sense”.

“Marie, no one expects you to regain your memories like that” Ontari insisted. But she knew that it would not be easy to interact with Marie for the commander and the general. She had had dealt with this new version of Marie and it had been hard for her to adapt as well and their connection could not compare to the love between the three of them, so Ontari could barely fathom how much harder it would be for the commander and the general.

Marie huffed “They don’t know how to interact with me” the young girl said voice laced with frustration with herself “I can see that they are holding back and expecting me to react in a certain way, but I don’t know how to anymore”.

“You should not stress yourself like that, Marie” Ontari cautioned. She remembered that the Skykru doctor had spoken about something like that and stressing herself would only be contradictory to Marie’s recovery, she had said something about the girl blocking herself if she acted like that.

“You can speak to them just like do with me” Ontari added after Marie had remained silent for long moments.

“Maybe…” Marie agreed cautiously, although hesitancy was obvious in her tone, belying her tentative agreement.

“You can” Ontari repeated, more forcefully this time, but her voice got softer again as she asked “Why do you think that you cannot trust them like that?”

“How should I…?!” Marie’s voice had taken on a shrill shriek and anger flashed through her grey eyes again.

Ontari frowned at the younger girl’s reaction.

Marie’s voice was quivering and hollow again, when she spoke up again “…I trusted the queen…” and tears gathered in her grey eyes again.

The girl’s words and their implication had been like a vicious slap to Anya’s face. She understood immediately why Marie had chosen to trust Ontari and was hesitant to show them even slight amounts of trust now. Nia had used and broken all the trust the young girl had naively shown to her and by thus broken her very believe in the fundamentality of trust.

Ontari seemed to have come to the same conclusion as she asked “And now you fear that the commander and general will misuse your trust as well?”

No audible answer was given, but Anya could hear the Ice Nation nightblood inhale sharply, so she could assume that Marie had nodded her agreement. She had waited for what felt like hours in front of the doors Ontari’s quarters, biding her time for the perfect moment to interrupt the girl’s conversation and get Marie back into their room, but Anya knew that she could not do so now. If she revealed her presence now, Marie would already feel betrayed by her. Anya was on the one hand grateful that she had chosen to follow her charge, because it was clear she might otherwise have never heard the same admissions from Marie, but on the other hand she felt oddly defeated.

Marie had not been wrong in her assessment of Anya’s and Lexa’s feelings of disappointment. They had both been so relived to see the girl alive, that it was like a harsh blow now, to see the girl physically, but to be so separated from her at the same time.

Anya soundlessly inched away from the nightblood’s quarters. The guards had waited at the end of the corridor and she sent them back to their receptive posts. Ontari was correct that not everyone would be happy about her return to the capitol and Anya would speak with Lexa about increasing protection for the Ice Nation nightblood. Even though she was sure Ontari did not harbour any particular feelings towards herself and the commander, she could not feel anything but a deep sense of gratitude for the nightblood now. Ontari had defended both of them and their care for Marie during the girls’ conversation and it was obvious that the nightblood truly wished to help Marie. She had not wanted to believe that a true friendship had grown between both girls, but Anya could no longer deny the honesty and deepness of the bond the nightblood obviously had with their charge.

Marie seemed to be completely lost in her own thoughts and she did not react to the sounds of loud footsteps from the corridor at first. When she finally caught up with them, a worried frown settled on her young features.

“Only the guard shift” Ontari quickly reassured the younger girl, the lie coming easily. Even though Marie had not noticed that absence of footsteps retreating from before the room, Ontari had noticed. The nightblood had concluded quickly that someone must have stood in front of the door the whole time and someone with enough power to send away the guards, she only noticed now that the door had not been closed completely by Marie as she had entered, probably surprised by Ontari defending herself. But Ontari knew that only the commander and the general would have simply waited in front of the door. She quickly banned a surge of irritation from her mind at the thought of being spied on, it was better if one of them had already heard everything which Marie had just told her. It also told her that whoever of the two had stood in front of the door was satisfied to leave Marie with her for the rest of the night and a quick glance to the small window told her that there were only very few hours of the nights left before she would be woken again to join the rest of the conclave for their training.

“You should sleep” Ontari directed gently. It was obvious that the conversation had exhausted Marie emotionally and although the younger girl still had that haunted look in her eyes, Ontari did not know on what to do to make it vanish again and she hoped that sleep would at least offer Marie a chance to think everything they had just spoken about through.

“Should I not return…?” Marie asked reluctance clear in her tone.

Ontari shook her head “Just lie down” she ordered softly and sank down again on the mattress, lying on her back.

Marie seemed to hesitate for the fraction of a second, before she complied with the order and cautiously lied down beside the older girl. Her movements were slow and cautious and her grey eyes hefted onto Ontari’s features, as she inched closer to the older girl, obviously afraid of being denied the physical comfort she seemed to seek.

Ontari only tightened her arms around Marie once it seemed as if the girl had found a comfortable position. It was not particularly comfortable to her, the younger girl’s elbow was digging into her side and her sharp chin was pressed against her collarbone, but she had no intention of asking her to move. She could feel the tenseness of the younger girl’s body pressed against her own and Ontari let her free hand soothingly run through Marie’s blonde hair, until her body got softer again and seemed to almost melt against her side. It was a weird sensation for Ontari to lie like this with Marie, they had shared a bed many times before in the queen’s fortress, but something had changed in the younger girl obviously and while she had held the girl back then, efficiently spooning her, the girl was now curled into her side. She felt it when the girl’s breathing evened out and Marie drifted off to sleep.

Ontari tightened her arms around her smaller body slightly, vowing to herself to protect the younger girl from further harm and deeply regretting that she had not been able to protect her from Nia.

 

Clarke had stayed awake for a rather long time, waiting for Lexa to return to her quarters, but the commander did not return. Clarke had not noticed drifting off at all, but when she woke, the other side of the huge bed was still cold and empty and silence rang through the commander’s chambers. Lexa had obviously not returned at all, Risha, who had accompanied the brunette, was still absent as well. With a frown Clarke rose from the bed, as worry settled within her mind. Had something happened?

She slung a robe around her body, warding of the chilliness of the room and went over to the doors, opening them. Only one guard stood in front of them and she recognized Ryder and realized Gustus’ absence. “Where is the commander?” the blonde asked with worry underlining her tone.

“Still in the throne room” Ryder answered immediately.

Clarke frowned “Is the meeting still ongoing?” she asked in apparent confusion. It was dark outside, signalling that it was still in the middle of the night.

“There was no meeting, Wanheda” Ryder answered truthfully.

Clarke suppressed the flinch the title still evoked from her body and she nodded her silent acknowledgment. She sighed under her breath, so the supposed meeting had truly only been an excuse. Clarke felt a sliver of hurt flash through her mind. She had argued back and forth with Lexa already that she wished to share her burdens with the young leader. But it was hard for the brunette to truly open up to Clarke.

Clarke left the commander’s quarters still clad in the robe and barefoot, but she barely felt the coldness of the stones against her feet. She could only imagine Lexa’s state if the commander had chosen to stay awake, probably broodingly sitting her throne the whole night.

Like she had predicted Gustus stood post in front of the throne room and although the burly guard had been ordered not to let anyone disturb his commander, he knew that Wanheda would not be denied entrance into the room and internally he was glad that the blonde Skykru woman would support Lexa like that.

Lexa truly sat on her throne when Clarke entered and although the brunette had discarded her heavy armour, her shoulders were bent and her expression downtrodden as if she was weighted down by all the burdens of the world.

The commander’s green eyes were exhausted and dark circles had started to form beneath her eyes, giving her an almost sickly complexion. Risha sat at the commander’s feet and the wolf’s muzzle rested in Lexa’s lap and the commander’s fingers stroked over her silky fur absently minded.

“Lexa” Clarke addressed the young leader softly and their eyes connected quickly.

Lexa straightened herself visibly and her back cracked loudly as it realigned again, having sat hunched over without moving at all for a few hours, lost in her own thoughts.

The commander noted on the worry within the blue eyes of her lover “I apologize if I made you worry” she reassured in a heavy tone.

Clarke quickly shook her head “You do not need to lie to me if you want distance, Lexa” she commented, not quiet hiding a slight accusation from her tone.

Lexa inclined her head and she closed her eyes shortly “I apologize again…” the leader said with a heavy sigh.

Clarke shook her head again, sighing herself “It is alright. I know it is hard for you to share all your thoughts with me. You are not used to sharing yourself like that…” She knew that Lexa simply needed more time to adapt to her changed living conditions and it did not help that it had been instilled into Lexa for years that feelings were weakness and nothing to be vocalized like that.

Lexa’s green eyes showed the gratitude for the blonde woman, she was unable to truly put into words. She had needed to be on her own to sort through her thoughts. She doubted that Marie would truly be a danger to her, the girl had not seemed to look for a way to physically attack her. But she had to agree with Titus that their changed relationship put the girl’s position as her second into question.

“The dinner was not as disastrous as it could have been” Clarke tried lamely to reason with the brunette, picking up on her thoughts.

Lexa raised a brow inquiringly “How could it have gone any worse” she asked and the bitterness was apparent in her tone, even to her own ears. Marie had left an emptiness in herself that could not be filled by Clarke and she feared Marie herself would not be able to return to her old self as well.

Clarke’s lips thinned disparagingly “Marie did not try to attack you physically” she retorted.

“She would have been foolish to try” Lexa remarked “She must have known that there was no chance of her succeeding faced with me and Anya together”.

Clarke sighed under her breath “Lexa, she will remember you…” she tried to reassured the brunette woman and the way her green eyes looked at her, so clearly disagreeing with her tugged at her heart painfully. She knew that Lexa felt as if she had lost the girl, she regarded as a daughter, a second time. “…even if she does not. You have gained her trust once, Lexa, why should you not connect with her again? A part of Marie must remember that she loves you” Clarke tried to reason with the young leader compassionately.

Lexa shook her head slightly. She had contemplated that possibility for hours and the conclusion she had come up with felt like it was tearing herself up from the inside out. What if it was better for Marie to not remember their connection? She knew how deeply the guilt had edged itself into her former mentor for the fact that she had left Marie behind in the first place and although Lexa had not giving voice to her own guilt, she could not shake the question from her mind, if Nia would have even tortured Marie like that if the Ice queen had not been aware of the feelings Lexa had for the young girl? A part of her was convinced that Nia would have only killed the girl if her love for the girl had not been in the picture and Lexa was sure that death would have been a kinder fate for their charge.

She was putting Clarke in the same position she had once put Costia in and she unconsciously had subjected Marie to the same danger. All of them had been linked to the commander through private feelings and Titus’ words of “love was weakness” rang through her mind again. Costia had paid with her life and Marie had paid the price as well. Lexa wished, she could go back in time and shield the young girl from all that she had suffered through, but as powerful as she was, she was unable to do so. Lexa had accepted that Clarke was an adult and a force on her own, she could not discourage the blonde healer in her intent to stay by her side. But Marie was a child still and no one had ever asked her, if she was willing to take the extra risk of being associated to her like that. Lexa had thought, she would offer more protection by announcing her as her second, but the opposite had happened and Lexa felt her own amount of guilt at what her choices had meant for the sweet child.

Lexa knew it would be a harsh blow if she were to send Marie away, because Anya would not wish to leave the girl ever again. The commander had sat on her throne for hours contemplating exactly that choice and she feared she was not strong enough to carry through with it. She could argue with Anya that bringing Marie back to the Ark would probably be the best for her to regain her memories, but she would also remove her from the environment where Abby had reasoned that the memories to herself where linked within the girl’s minds; she could only hope the general would not catch up on that fact.

“I will send Anya and Marie to Arkadia with your mother” Lexa announced, her shoulders visibly sagged again and she felt as if a band wrapped itself around her heart, constricting it harshly.

“What?!” Clarke asked, disbelieve etched into her features and worry tinting her voice strongly.

“It is better this way, Clarke” Lexa explained voice tired and heavy.

Clarke shook her head, disagreement clear in her blue eyes “You don’t wish for them to return, do you?”

Lexa’s green eyes shone with a sheen of tears as she nodded her head in agreement “I have put her in harm’s way enough already…”

“Oh, Lexa…” Clarke sighed under breath and stepped forward, enveloping the brunette in her arms. She felt the commander’s body sagging against her own and Lexa’s forehead rested against her shoulder, as if all strength had left the young leader’s body. “Think about it again after you have slept some, Lexa” Clarke tried to reason with her lover and gently caressed her neck through her mass of brown locks.

“I have already made my decision…” Lexa retorted, voice sounding utterly defeated and Clarke only tightened her arms around the other woman, she would try to argue with the commander in the morning; right now, she only needed rest.

 

Chapter 165

Clarke had waited until they had returned to the privacy of the commander’s quarters, before she spoke again. She had changed her mind about letting Lexa simply sleep over the decision, she knew how stubborn and self-sacrificing the young leader was and she feared her mind would-be set-in stone if she waited until morning to try to change her mind. Clarke could understand why Lexa would choose to send both her former mentor and Marie from her side. What could the commander hope to achieve that way?

“Lexa, you are making an error if you sent them away” Clarke directly addressed the matter at hand and could see the brunette’s features harden, as she pulled forth the mask of the commander. She quickly stepped closer to her, taking her hands into her own, caressing the calloused fingers gently and she shook her head vehemently “Don’t do that, Lexa. You are not going to make this decision as the commander”.

“You still have not understood that I am always the commander” Lexa remarked voice strong and green eyes unyielding.

Clarke’s lips thinned “No, I am acutely aware of that” she shot back, her own blue eyes narrowed “But this is not a decision you should make as the commander. Lexa, you regard Marie as a daughter…” she started to try to reason with the young leader.

“Something I should clearly not have” Lexa interjected as strongly.

Clarke shook her head again, feeling her patience wan out quickly “For god’s sake, Lexa! Even you cannot control your heart like that. Marie is not dead, Lexa, and sending her away would be one of your biggest mistakes”.

Lexa met Clarke’s blue eyes calmly, even as a storm seemed to rage through the healer’s gaze. Clarke was, without knowing it, giving voice to what Lexa already knew and had tried hard to ban from her mind.

“Fight for her, my warrior, don’t act out of fear” Clarke tried to hearten the young leader. She did not know if it had been the way she addressed Lexa or her hint at fear, which truly changed the commander’s mind, but she could almost see it, how the light in her green eyes changed.

“Your warrior?” Lexa echoed, her lips turned upwards in the hint of a smile, her tone had gotten lighter again and the band which had been fastened around her heart, seemed to loosen itself again, making her feel lighter and stronger again.

Clarke smirked with a slight blush on her cheeks “Are you not a warrior, commander?” she asked teasingly, feeling that the leader’s mood had efficiently been lifted.

“The greatest of them all” Lexa agreed without any hint of arrogance. Her smile dimed slightly as she added “Do not mention what we have spoken about to Anya, please”. The commander knew that her general would probably take personal offence, if she learned that she had contemplated sending her away from her private counsel again after making her the head of her army. She suddenly felt foolish for contemplating such a decision at all. She needed all the support of those she knew to be loyal to her until the very end with a war on the horizon.

Clarke nodded, as she leaned closer and placed a gentle kiss on the corners of the young leader’s mouth, shooing thoughts of war from her mind efficiently. She pulled gently at Lexa’s hand, directing her over to the bed and sinking down in front of her. Lexa fell asleep with Clarke’s warm arms enveloping her and a feeling of hope blooming in her chest, hope that everything would turn right again.

 

Anya had not found much rest during the remaining hours of the night. Her thoughts had kept circling back around themselves in her mind, keeping herself from falling back asleep.

Maybe they had gone the wrong way about trying to help Marie? She would need to speak with Abby first thing in the morning and afterwards with Lexa, before her former second would be occupied with meetings for the remainder of the day.

Anya rose from her bed, long before the sun had truly risen and it was still mostly dark outside. Her body felt exhausted, but her mind was still far too turmoiled to even contemplate sleeping. She hoped that the Skykru doctor would not be too upset to be approached at such an hour, but she simply did not wish to wait any longer. Abby had said that she would try to speak to Marie again this morning, but if the girl did not wish to enclose anything to her, like she feared, she would leave again to get back to Arkadia.

Abby looked rather dishevelled, when Anya knocked at the door to the quarters which been assigned to the doctor. “Is something wrong with Marie?” Abby immediately asked, as she pulled her hair together into a ponytail.

“No” Anya answered “She has spent the night with Ontari. She opened up a lot to her” the general confessed.

Abby nodded with a frown on her face, unsure of why the other woman was telling her that.

“Marie does not trust us neither me, nor Lexa. But she trusts Ontari” Anya remarked, waiting if the doctor would come to the same conclusion she had during the night.

Abby thought for a moment, before she nodded “Both of you do not trust Ontari, do you?” she asked inquiringly.

Anya shook her head “She is Ice Nation. But her intentions with Marie are pure” she insisted, she could not deny that fact any longer.

“Then it might help if you both show Marie that you do trust Ontari” Abby surmised what Anya had already assumed. “Do you think she will be more open to talk with me today?” the doctor asked after a short pause.

“I doubt it” Anya answered “She is afraid to trust me and Lexa, although she knows of our feelings for her. She would not trust you like that, you have no connection to her”.

Abby did not deny the general’s words. Although she did internally disagree with the other woman, she in fact had a much older connection with Marie than they had, but she never shared such a deep personal bond with the girl, so it would be more probable for Marie to find trust into them. She would still try again, even though she had very little hope of getting anything out of the girl now.

Before coming to Polis Abby had highly doubted that the general or the commander would heed anything she would advise them on and she was positively surprised to realize that her opinion was treasured by them.

Anya nodded, inclining her head mutely and swept from the room as quickly, as she had come, leaving Abby slightly confused.

The general knew that the commander would already be out of bed and she hoped to surpass her before the younger woman left for an early morning training. She had sent a guard to Titus to relay to the man not to collect Ontari for her daily training and wait for further instructions, the man would surely be furious to receive orders like that from her. But Anya did not care about that for a moment, hopefully, Ontari and Marie would catch slightly more rest that way.

On her way to the commander’s quarters Anya shortly ran into Alira, so the handmaid had probably already catered to the commander and the general quickened her pace slightly.

Fortunately, Gustus and Ryder both still stood in front of the doors to the commander’s quarters, signalling the leader’s presence. Anya nodded to both before letting herself inside.

Lexa seemed to be in the process of finishing her breakfast when Anya entered and the commander looked genuinely surprised to see her. Worry tinted her voice clearly as she asked “Has something happened with Marie?”

“Not directly” Anya reassured her former second and sat down opposite of Lexa.

Clarke came out of the bathroom in that moment, fastening a cloak around herself. She paused shortly when she noticed the general’s presence “Good morning, Anya” she greeted the woman. “I am afraid I cannot stay. A patient is waiting for me” the healer explained and nodded to Anya, before she bent down and kissed Lexa gently in farewell, giving her an encouraging smile, before she left the commander’s quarters altogether.

“Where is Marie then?” Lexa asked slightly confused. She had not expected to see her general until later in the day, when a meeting was scheduled.

“With Ontari” Anya answered immediately “She stayed the night with her”.

Lexa raised a brow questioningly at the older woman.

“Marie must have woken from a nightmare last night and she had obviously not wanted to wake me up” Anya started to narrate and she slowly filled Lexa into what she had listened in while she stood in front of the nightblood’s doors.

Lexa’s features flashed with varying degrees of worry and compassion for their young charge. She felt her heart ache in sympathy for the girl and knew that they would both do everything in their power to help her get better.

“What do you suggest then?” Lexa asked after her general had finished speaking. It was obvious the older woman was as shocked by some of their charge’s admissions as she felt, although Anya already had hours to contemplate over them.

“Marie needs to gain new trust into us” Anya finished and before Lexa could interject something, she added “We cannot wait for her to regain her memories. It is possible, that she never will.”

Lexa nodded with a thoughtful expression, as a sigh left her lips. Abby had already told them that fact the prior day.

“While Marie does not trust us, she does trust Ontari” Anya said after a moment of silence between them.

Lexa’s brows knitted together in confusion, not seeing how that was supposed to help them get closer to Marie again.

“Even though we have not forbidden Marie from seeking out Ontari, it must have been obvious to her that we are not pleased with the fact, that she actually does” Anya remarked.

Lexa sighed under her breath “So, you propose that we need to show Marie that we trust Ontari?” she checked, doubt lacing her tone. Although she did trust the Ice Nation nightblood to a certain degree, she did not regard the idea of getting closer to her personally, as such a good one.

“Exactly” Anya agreed “Ontari knows that members of other clans will not be pleased to see her continue as a novitiate under you. She has already gotten hold of a dagger, prepared to protect herself.”

“You want me to protect her more strongly?” Lexa inquired. She hoped that no one would be foolish enough to undermine her by attacking the Ice Nation nightblood, but it was not out of the scope of possibility altogether as well.

“I want to take over her training for now, together with Marie’s” Anya explained and Lexa’s frown made her add quickly “I know that I am no flamekeeper, but having both girls spend their days with each other can only help. Marie is much more relaxed around Ontari. Abby thinks that letting them share a sleeping place would be advantageous as well. But I do not want Marie removed from me completely…”

Lexa raised a brow at the older woman “You do realize, that the only option to reach both at the same time, would be sharing your quarters with Ontari as well? Which would already increase her security a lot”.

Anya sighed and the clench of her jaw as she nodded made it apparent that the general had thought a lot about what she was proposing to her.

Lexa nodded, a slight frown still resting on her features “It will surely help to put the girl at ease again in your presence…” as her voice trailed off, Anya could clearly detect some bitterness.

“Both of them should spend a little time with you on a daily basis, removed from your responsibilities as the commander” Anya added last. She had briefly discussed that with Abby as well. The doctor had been clear that she doubted Marie would ever find trust into Lexa, if she did not find a connection to her removed from her political role, Marie needed to get to know the woman behind the mask of the commander again, now that Nia had efficiently poisoned the girl’s mind against the commander.

Lexa sighed audibly, but she nodded “I will try to accommodate to that” she promised gravely. She did wish to re-connect with Marie after all.

 

Ontari woke with a slight start, feeling Marie’s smaller body still cuddled against her side. She seemed to have lost all sensation of the limp on which Marie’s weight still rested and she frowned, when she noticed the light already filtering through the window from outside. The sun must have risen some time ago already, so, she wondered why no one had called her to attend the morning training. She internally wondered if Marie’s presence and the general could be the reason for that.

Ontari gently tried to rouse Marie, although the girl still looked peaceful in her slumber. She doubted that the general would let them sleep and laze the day away.

Marie’s expression as she slowly grumbled awake, looked so innocent and cute, that it pulled a chuckle from between Ontari’s lips.

“It is time to rise, sleepyhead” Ontari teased lightly, once Marie sat up, and she massaged the now freed arm, trying to regain the feeling in the limp.

Marie light-heartedly glared at the older girl, but stretched herself. A shy smile rested on her lips, she had slept better last night than she could remember ever sleeping since losing her memories. “Oh, shut up” she sassed right back, lightly shoving the older girl.

Ontari laughed at the girl’s feeble attempt and simply got out of the bed altogether.

Marie frowned slightly, when she caught up with how late it already was.

Ontari’s smile turned reassuring when she noticed worry flashing through the younger girl’s grey eyes “I am sure the general just wanted us to rest longer”. She highly doubted that the Trikru woman would have taken her own exhaustion into account though.

“How did you…?” Marie started to ask, her frown deepening in confusion.

Ontari raised a brow and shook her head lightly “You are still far too easy to read sometimes, Marie”.

Marie grumbled something, too low for Ontari to understand and got out of bed as well.

“Come” Ontari motioned, after she had splashed some water over her face “I will bring you back to the general”.

Marie nodded and Ontari could see the girl’s slight smile freezing completely and grey eyes got worried and even slightly scared.

Ontari lightly squeezed the younger girl’s shoulders “The general will not be angry at you” she reasoned calmly.

Marie nodded after another deep breath, but Ontari kept a hand on the girl’s back, guiding her outside and towards the elevator. The guards did not intercept them, but they accompanied them into the elevator. Marie leaned back slightly against the older girl’s hand. She did not know herself, why she felt so nervous to return to Anya, the woman had not given her any reason to be afraid of her. But a small voice in her mind supplied a critical “yet” to that thought.

Ontari frowned slightly when the guard did not accompany them out of the elevator again, but she did not know what their orders had been and other guards were constantly posted on the top floor of the tower, keeping the commander’s save, even if she was absent.

Marie faltered noticeably in front of the door to the general’s quarters and only Ontari’s hand remaining against her back, pushed her to reach for the door and really open it. The girl stopped in her step, when she spotted Anya.

The general was sitting at the table, which was filled with breakfast and the table had been set for three people.

She frowned when she noticed how crowded the quarters suddenly felt and it took her a moment until she figured out the reason. All the furniture had been moved, so that a third bed had found place inside of the room. Marie internally wondered for who it was supposed to be.

Ontari subtly squeezed the younger girl’s shoulder and inclined her head respectfully to the Trikru general as a farewell, but the woman stopped her with a gesture.

“Stay” Anya ordered calmly and motioned both girls over to the table “Help yourselves” she added when both sat down on their chairs, stiff and obviously confused with what was going on.

Marie only started to take something for herself, after Ontari had filled a plate for herself. Although the nightblood felt visibly uncomfortable, she had pulled on a neutral expression, probably more for Marie’s benefit.

When Ontari truly looked at the general, an understanding seemed to pass through her brown eyes and Ontari knew that she had been the one, who had stood in front of her door for hours last night, as she had comforted Marie.

“I know that you are more comfortable with Ontari, Marie” Anya finally addressed her young charge, which instantly made Marie freeze up and look at the general like a startled deer.

Anya sighed under her breath “It will take some getting used to, but you will both be trained by me from now and share my quarters”.

Ontari had to control herself, or she was sure her mouth would have hung open in silent shock. That was probably the least likely outcome of the previous night, she could have foreseen. She had hoped that she would not be punished for letting Marie stay with her, but she had at least expected some kind of lecture and warning to maybe keep a little more distance to the blonde child. She had surely not expected to be now protected by the general herself, because she did realize that the new arrangement would not only benefit Marie, but it would offer her a lot more protection, she would be nearly untouchable.

Marie was obviously confused as well, but the girl could not stop a tentative smile ghosting over her lips. She would truly feel a lot better with Ontari being closer to herself.

“Thank you…” the girl said softly to the general, her grey eyes shining with gratitude and Anya inclined her head with a kind expression.

 

 

Chapter 166

Their first breakfast together could probably have gone over smoother, but it was obvious that neither of them knew what to say to each other.

Anya sighed under her breath. She had never been the chattiest person and Marie had previously been the one to continuously chirp about one thing or the other.

It was obvious that Ontari and Marie both were uncomfortable in the new arrangement, but Anya hoped that they would ease into it with a bit of time.

She basically knew nothing about the Ice Nation nightblood beside her name and that she had grown up under Nia’s tutelage. She would need to try to get better acquittanced with Ontari quickly.

“Abby will come to talk to you after we finish eating” Anya proclaimed into the strained silence that had settled between them.

Ontari did not react to the statement, as it did not pertain to her, but Marie swallowed forcefully and stopped eating altogether, although the girl had barely eaten more than a few small bites.

Anya sighed again at the strong reaction of her charge and felt her own appetite dwindle down.

She waited a few more moments before the general stood from her place and asked a guard to send for Abby. Anya could hear Ontari whispering a few reassurances to Marie and felt the gratefulness for the nightblood increase slightly at her attempt to support Marie and put the girl on ease.

Marie’s expression had closed off completely when Anya returned, so Ontari’s attempts had not been successful.

“Ontari, we will go outside in the meantime” the general addressed the nightblood girl in an even and almost kind tone.

Ontari nodded her silent agreement, although she would have preferred to stay and keep Marie company. But she also had no idea on how the Skykru planned to help Marie and maybe she needed to be alone with the younger girl for that purpose. She wondered what the general had planned for her, but she would see in a few moments.

She guessed that the general would lay down some ground rules of how she expected her to behave now that she was essentially her charge as well for the time being. Ontari wondered internally if she would still share lessons with the other novitiates, but she guessed all her questions would be answered sooner or later.

The minutes trickled by slowly and under the watchful gaze of the general, Ontari did not try to engage Marie in conversation to divert the girl’s attention. Marie’s whole frame had tensed up and it was obvious her nervousness was only mounting with every passing second. She would have liked to reach out and physically reassure and ground the younger girl, but she was not sure how the general would react to something like that, so Ontari simply watched Marie mutely.

When Abby arrived, Ontari smiled reassuringly at Marie and subtly let her hand brush over the younger girl’s arms, trying to offer her a kind gesture as a farewell. She followed the general obediently without being prompted to.

Her instincts told her to pull up an arrogant front, showing that she felt herself superior, but the change of arrangements had surprised Ontari. She kept her expression more or less open, but at least neutral and fell into step slightly behind the general.

“Have you ever had a real first?” Anya asked the Ice Nation nightblood, once they had stepped inside of the elevator. She did not know how long Abby had planned on speaking with Marie, but Gustus still stood post on the top floor of the tower and could stay with Marie, should Abby leave before she returned with Ontari.

Ontari raised her brow questioningly, slightly thrown by the off-hand inquiry “Beside the queen?” she checked.

Anya snorted lightly under her breath “Nia hardly counts a first”.

“Then, no” Ontari answered curtly, still wondering what the general was aiming at with her question. She followed the woman silently as they stepped out of the tower, she faltered only for the fraction of the second, when the general led them out of Polis, into the surrounding woods. She had minutely feared the general would be leading her to her own execution, but she had shooed the thought from her mind at once again.

“You may think that you already know everything, Ontari” Anya turned around and stopped in the middle of a clearing. She knew the guard schedule and there would be no one listening to their conversation here. It was imperative that Ontari agreed to be trained by her, Lexa and she could easily force her to share the general’s quarters, but they could not force her cooperation, not truly at least.

Ontari raised a brow in the mimic of a mocking question. She had learned already that the assessment of her omniscience was more than a little flawed.

“You probably know that I have heard almost your complete conversation with Marie last night” Anya changed the subject abruptly.

Ontari nodded with a cautious expression, she had no idea why the general had changed the subject at all and the whole conversation was starting to creep her out. Had she been led out into the woods to be eliminated after all? Would Marie believe that she had died in an accident so coincidentally?

“I am, and Lexa as well is, deeply grateful for your continued support of Marie” Anya continued after the beat of a second, voice calm and honest. Her brown eyes bored into Ontari’s dark ones with an intensity that made the nightblood almost squirm under its weight.

Ontari was slightly surprised to hear such words of gratitude from the general, she had truly not expected to be acknowledged at all.

“You have willingly risked coming back to Polis, simply to bring Marie back to safety” Anya continued, it was obvious she had thought long on what she wanted to say and Ontari did not wish to interrupt the general’s words.

“There is more to you than brute strength obviously” Anya concluded “Although your fighting skills hardly need any training at all, other aspects of your tutelage have been almost completely neglected. You have shown Marie true compassion, although I doubt you have received any before. There is a strong spirit within you, but your spirit lacks guidance. You know that I have been a first to Lexa before.”

Ontari nodded to the last statement, her dark eyes openly showed her surprise at the general’s words. It almost sounded as if the woman truly wanted to take her as her second as well. She highly doubted she would need something like that at all now anymore. The doubt she felt creeping through her mind, must have shown on her features slightly.

“I am well aware that you are too old to start as a second” Anya agreed “But you could still do with lessons not pertaining fighting skills. If you agree to this, you agree to officially become my second for the time being”.

Ontari’s features twisted into a frown. How should that be working out?

“You would still share the commander’s lessons with the novitiates, but you would spend the rest of your time solely with me, Marie and from time to time Lexa” Anya answered the nightblood’s question, easily picking up on her thoughts.

“Why would you offer something like that?” Ontari wondered out loud. No one had ever offered her any kind of assistance without wanting something in exchange. The world simply did not work that way. “Helping Marie would be my end of the arrangement?” she added after a second, not giving the general the chance to give an answer to her previous question.

Anya shook her head “This does not have anything to do with Marie. You have already started to help Marie, there is nothing in particular I would ask you to do for her. Simply being there seems to put her more at ease. I may not understand the bond you both share, but I cannot deny its existence”.

“Why then?” Ontari questioned again. She did not quiet believe that the Trikru general would offer her any kind of help like that and she still did not know why she would need tutelage at all. It would hardly matter if she had perfect reading skills.

“You will figure that out eventually” Anya answered ominously.

Ontari’s frown deepened and her brows knitted together, she felt irritation settle in her mind. What was the general playing at.

“It will be one of your first lessons” Anya added after a moment of silence.

“What will?” Ontari inquired on edge in a clipped tone, looking away shortly and grinding her teeth together in silent anger.

And suddenly Anya was gone.

Ontari blinked at the spot where the general had just stood. She had not looked away for more than a few seconds and there was no sign of the woman any longer.

Ontari opened her mouth to call out to the general, when she realized that she had no idea on how to address the woman from now on and she closed it with a snap.

What kind of lesson was this supposed to be, Ontari mused angrily in her mind. A sullen frown was etched into her features as she trudged back into the direction of the tower. Fortunately, they had not travelled far into the woods.

Anya watched the nightblood looking around the edges of the clearing for signs of her for a few moments until the girl seemed to give up already and turn around to leave. Patience and endurance would be something she would need to work on with both girls as both of them got impatient and angry way too easy.

The general let herself drop from the tree, she had hidden on, landing on the ground almost soundlessly and only shortly in front of Ontari, obviously startling the girl strongly.

“You lack experience in the woods” Anya remarked drily and preceded the girl without another word, the look of irritation crossing over her face shortly, did not go unnoticed by the general. “You can call me Anya from now on, there is no need to remind me of my title every time you address me” Anya called over shoulder easily.

Ontari followed the general with her mouth hanging slightly open. She had not expected the woman to be like this. She still did not understand, why the general would take her on as a kind of a second. Truthfully, she had wished for a long time to experience the comradery and the bond between a first and a second, but she had buried that wish years ago, knowing it was futile to wish for something impossible like this. The queen had always instilled in her that she did not need anything else beside Nia herself and she had believed her, she knew better now.

“The same rules will apply to both of you from now on” Anya said, although Ontari had not given a clear sign of consent, she had also not spoken a denial, so Anya would take that for now.

Ontari nodded with a cautious expression, the only problem with that statement was, that she was not aware of Marie’s rules.

Anya remained rooted to the spot motionless suddenly and Ontari nearly crashed into the woman’s back, not having expected her to stop so abruptly.

Annoyance was obvious on the woman’s sharp features as she drawled “You should not agree with rules, you do not know. You should ask for me to clarify them” she reprimanded the nightblood sharply.

Her brown eyes were strict as they connected with Ontari’s dark ones and the nightblood hastily nodded her agreement.

Anya sighed and pinched the bridge of her nose, her annoyance only mounting “I am aware that Nia will probably not have cared for you questioning her on anything, but I am not her. If you do not know or understand something, I expect you to ask. You do not learn without asking for answers”.

Ontari seemed to contemplate her words, before she nodded again, she seemed to catch on to her automatic response of agreeing and stopped the motion of her head, a faint blush rising to her cheeks and her voice was softer as Anya had ever heard as she mumbled an almost inaudible apology.

“Remember that, Ontari” Anya emphasized “I know it will be a change for you. You will see what being my second means in the next weeks”.

Ontari nodded again and her voice was slightly hesitant as she asked “To what rules have I agreed?”

Anya smirked slightly “You have not agreed to anything yet, but you have not denied either. Think about it for a few days. I expect you to have made up your mind in a moons time. The basic rules you need to know now, are fairly easy to follow. Marie and you are both allowed to move through the tower and the streets of Polis in your free time, but I want to know where you are going. No wandering around without alerting anyone beforehand.”

Ontari nodded, that was a sensible enough rule and she understood the safety measure behind it. It had apparently taken the general a few hours to catch up with the fact that Marie had been abducted from her out of Polis all those weeks ago. Ontari suddenly wondered just how much her life had changed, since she had literally stumbled onto Marie. She could have never predicted the outcome of the proceedings since then and she was positive, she would not change them if she could go back into time.

“Your schedule will be organized by me and Lexa. I want you and Marie to spend some time with the commander daily” Anya continued.

Ontari blinked at the general completely floored, why would she be included in something like that? She understood the reasoning as to why Marie needed to spend time with the commander in private, but her inclusion in that surprised her beyond words.

Anya’s brown eyes seemed to become gentler slightly “Nia has not just poisoned Marie’s mind against Lexa, but yours as well. You have already seen that the commander is not the kind of leader, Nia has portrayed her to be. But you do not know her in private, you do not know the person Lexa is. The same as we do barely know anything about you, beside your excellent fighting skills”.

Ontari contemplated the woman’s words for long silent moments. Beside Marie she could not remember a single other person, who had ever shown any interest in her personality before and she could not help feeling slightly suspicious of the general’s ulterior motives. It felt too easy and too good to be true. She would have agreed to whatever proposal the general might have made, simply to have the possibility to be near Marie. Marie had truly been the only one to ever offer her any kind of real kindness and she would not let the girl down now that she needed her. She would take the time, the general had offered her, she somehow doubted, that her choice would make any difference, but she would see in a moon’s time.

She could not deny a certain truth to the general’s words. She had heard the same lies about the commander and about Trikru for years, but she had seen over the last months that most had been unfounded. Ontari did not know, if she truly needed to get to know the commander on a personal level and she somehow doubted that the woman would be pleased with that arrangement at all. She quitted her doubt down quickly, the general would not proclaim something like that, without discussing it with her former second beforehand.

“I don’t know what to say” Ontari finally admitted after long moments of walking through the forest side by side in silence.

“That is alright” Anya reassured quickly “I do not wish you or Marie to carry weapons in my quarters. We will share meals together and the rest will probably just develop with time. You both will need to accompany me to a few meetings and trainings with my unit. You are going to share your lessons with Marie, so they may not all primarily target you or vice versa, even through your age difference, you can still learn together”.

Ontari nodded thoughtfully. The concept sounded logical to her and she did not mind it in the slightest that she would be seeing less of the other novitiates and probably barely have any contact with the flamekeeper any longer. Being so close to the general would surely get some time to used to it, but it sounded as if the woman was fair. She knew from Marie that the general did not resort to physical punishments for anything, so not having to fear that was a huge advantage. Ontari was not used to share her sleeping quarters with anyone beside Marie, the queen had never required her to sleep within her quarters, she had always been isolated and had her own room.

She wondered what would happen once the war between the rest of the coalition and Azgeda broke out. Would she be expected to fight her own clan? Ontari was positive she would aid in a direct fight against the queen, but what about the rest of Azgeda? She guessed she would receive answers to those questions as well with time.

Her thoughts kept on returning to Marie and she wondered how her meeting with the Skykru doctor had gone. She highly doubted that the younger girl would have confided anything to the woman. But she had no idea how the girl might react if she was forced to talk.

 

 

Another warning again: This chapter heavily deals with the rape aspect again, so it is quite heavy.

Chapter 167

Marie watched Ontari and Anya leave with a frown. She would have like it way better if they had stayed. She did not wish to speak with Abby. She had not liked the doctor the previous day and her insides already clenched uncomfortably in anticipation.

The doctor’s smile seemed kind and honest, when the woman entered and closed the door softly behind herself, sitting down on the chair Anya had just occupied.

“Good morning, Marie” Abby greeted the child calmly and kept her expression open.

Marie only inclined her head in greeting, keeping her lips sealed together tightly, there was nothing she wished to say.

“I heard you had quite the rough night” Abby tried to open conversation with the girl.

Marie nodded, although reluctance was obvious on her features.

Abby sighed under her breath “Is there anything you want to talk about?”

“No” Marie immediately denied, shaking her head vehemently.

“Alright” Abby nodded “Maybe something comes to your mind later” she suggested and pulled a book from her bag, opening it and starting to read. She hoped that Marie would just open up at least a little bit with time and faced with only her as company.

Marie narrowed her eyes at the woman. She had hoped that the doctor would simply leave again immediately, if she stayed resolutely silent and it irked her that the woman seemed inclined to stay waiting.

As silence settled in the quarters again, Marie’s thoughts began to run wild against her will. She remembered how Abby had classified what the queen had made her do as “rape”, but she still struggled with the concept. Ontari had advised her to ask someone else for their opinion.

Marie lost all comprehension of time, the only indication that time flowed at all, was the sound of Abby turning a pace occasionally every now and then. It could have been only a few minutes which had passed but it could have been several hours as well.

When the silence seemed to start to drown her and her thoughts kept on screaming louder and louder, Marie spoke up again. She tried to keep her voice as steadfast as possible, but it sounded quivering even to her own eyes. “You said … that the queen … r… raped me…” her voice gave out and her grey eyes were huge in her pale face.

Abby looked at the girl with a gentle and understanding expression and encouragingly said “Yes, she forced you to pleasure her against your consent and that is classified as rape”.

Marie shook her head in denial “She did not!” there was a screech to her tone and her lips pressed into a harsh line.

“Marie…” Abby leaned slightly over and placed a hand over Marie’s smaller ones.

The girl flinched away from her touch violently, nearly falling over with the chair altogether, still shaking her head. “Don’t!” Marie denied the woman to be touched and her voice was hard as she reasoned “I did consent or I did not disagree openly…”

The girl’s voice sounded hollow and haunted, although her features looked hard as if carved from stone.

Abby shook her head in disagreement and her voice was grave as she said “Marie, you are a child. You could not have given your consent to sexual interactions. When an adult coerces a child into a physical relationship, it is always regarded as rape, Marie. A child cannot make such a decision.”

Marie nodded although the confusion and inability to grasp the concept was palpable on her features.

“On which point do you disagree?” Abby asked kindly, keeping her voice even and gentle.

Marie frowned before she said “But I did not fight back…”

Abby shook her head again and retorted with vigour “What the queen has made you do, was by no means your choice, Marie. That you did not physically fight back, does not mean that you wanted to participate, your survival instinct protected you, you were forced.”

“Why ….” Marie started to ask, voice breaking too quickly for the question to form.

It was still obvious to Abby what the girl wished to know and she knew it was typical of a victim of abuse to wonder why they had been abused in the first place. The mind of a victim would try to come up with reasons, placing blame with the victim. It was important to make the girl understand that she could not have done anything to prompt what had happened to her. The problem was, that there simply was no logical reasoning for the Ice queen had done to Marie. There was nothing she could say to reduce the horrors Marie had lived through in any way.

Abby etched slightly closer to Marie with her chair and took the child’s hands again, giving them a squeeze.

Marie’s grey eyes were wide and huge in her pale face, haunted in their expression and her fingers shook strongly.

“Marie, as hard as it sounds, but there is no logical explanation to what you have suffered” Abby addressed the girl’s obvious question.

“I have not fought back…” Marie repeated in an almost defeated tone and the girl looked awfully small, shaking like a leaf, she seemed to curl in on herself on the chair.

“Marie” Abby shook her head. She did not know what might be able to change the girl’s mind, but she had to try nevertheless. “What makes you think that you consented in any way?” the doctor asked, voice compassionate and eyes understanding. She did not know, how long Marie would be this open with her, but she needed to use the little time the girl’s breakdown offered.

Marie shrugged her shoulders with a helpless expression and tried to pry her fingers out of the doctor’s hands, but the older woman held on strongly.

“Marie, you did not initiate this…” Abby tried to reason with the girl and was surprised when the girl suddenly ripped her hands away and her grey eyes seemed to blaze with flaming anger.

“But I did!” the girl almost shrieked, voice shrill and clearly agitated.

“What do you mean?” Abby cautiously asked, keeping her voice as calm as possible, even though she felt alarmed by the child’s outburst.

Marie’s anger seemed to ebb away as quickly as it had erupted and only emptiness seemed to be left within her grey eyes. “You want to know, you truly want to know?!” the girl screamed, voice high with agitation and full of scarcely suppressed emotions.

It seemed the child was not truly waiting for an answer and Abby would forever remember the strange mixture of seeming calmness and being in such a flustered state. The way Marie spoke in total sedateness and yet how haunted her gaze was. The child’s words made her stomach coil and bile rise in her throat.

“The queen instructed me on what to do …” a shudder visibly ran through the girl’s body as the memory played at the forefront of her mind “… I did not like to do it … it felt wrong and it made me feel sick … but the queen said … she …  she said that I did it right …” tears had begun to fall from her grey eyes and although Abby kept looking at the girl, it was obvious Marie was not seeing her anymore, she seemed lost in her own memories.

The door to the general’s quarters was suddenly opened and Abby whipped around, a snarl on the doctor’s lips. She kept her biting comment sealed behind her lips, as Anya and Ontari stepped inside and Marie’s quivering voice broke the silence again. It seemed the younger girl had not even realized the arrival of the other two.

“…she expected me to do it from then on … if I didn’t, she would touch me first …” Marie’s voice had a wooden quality to it.

Anya stopped in her tracks, struck by her charge’s words like lightening and she had to ball her hands to fists at her side. It worried her that Marie had not shown any outward reaction to their return and she had not expected that her charge would speak to Abby at all, she wondered how the doctor had managed to get her to talk. She was not convinced that speaking about what she had suffered through would truly be helpful to Marie.

“…it hurt so bad…” Marie sobbed out after a beat of silence and if possible, the girl seemed to get even smaller.

Abby let out an alarmed gasp. She still had not made a physical examination of the child, but if the girl’s words eluded to what she feared they did, she would need to take a closer look at the girl. Marie did not seem aware of her surroundings anymore and the anger radiating off of the general was worrying her. Abby motioned the general over into the bathroom, closing the door softly behind them.

“What?” Anya asked curtly, voice clipped and her brown eyes hard, her features pulled tight with her anger. The general was torn between wanting to return to Marie and engulf the girl in a strong hug and marching her unit to Nia’s hideout and skinning that monster herself.

“I can understand your anger, Anya” Abby started, not yielding to the warrior’s display of fury. She needed to think of Marie first and foremost, but she feared that the girl would not let herself be examined willingly like that. “I fear that I need to examine Marie” the doctor proclaimed, voice strained.

Anya’s eyebrows rose in obvious confusion “Clarke had already looked at her and said there was nothing which needed to be treated, beside the extensive scarring”.

Abby nodded “Yes, she did. But she would not have looked for internal damage. If there was any kind of penetration involved it is necessary to exclude such, or Marie could have complications later” her voice was heavy as she gave her explanation.

Anya paled at the Skykru’s doctor’s words and her blood seemed to freeze in her veins, as sour bile rose in her throat.

“It is probably better if Marie is sedated for that” Abby continued. She did not see any possibility to go trough with such a physical examination and not upset the traumatized girl even more if she was conscious.

A frown appeared on the general’s features. She did not like the idea of putting Marie into an unnatural sleep, so that the other woman could examine her. Was that not a kind of violation of the girl as well?

“It would diminish the stress for Marie” Abby reasoned, sensing the other woman’s hesitation “Examining her is truly necessary”.

Anya nodded with a sigh. “Why did she speak about it now so suddenly?” she asked the other woman before she could open the door again.

Abby shook her head “I told you that predicting the way Marie will work through the trauma she suffered is not possible. Just because she is speaking about it now, does not mean that is feeling better by any means, or that she will continue to speak about it at a later point”.

The general nodded again and her sharp features had lost their anger, her voice was barely beyond a whisper and she did not look into Abby’s eyes as she asked “How are we supposed to help her with this? I do not know what to say to her…”

Abby’s tight smile faltered slightly, she did not wish to overstep, but she stepped closer to the general and squeezed her shoulder for a moment in a reassuring gesture. “There is nothing we can say to Marie, which will truly make anything better for her. The girl needs to feel that she is safe again and protected. She needs to know that she does not have to fear a repetition of her treatment ever again. Marie needs to accept that she has been used against her will and that is was by no means her fault. But those things will sink in with time. It will not be easy to support her through this…” the doctor sighed under her breath as her words trailed off.

Abby’s eyes softened slightly at the obvious feelings of helplessness and she could understand how hard it was for the general to admit them to her of all people. The fact that the fierce woman was able to overlook her own pride and ask her for help signalled to Abby just how deeply Anya truly cared for Marie.

Anya nodded and the little signs of weakness and helplessness vanished from her posture as the general pulled herself back together. The general opened the door to the main room and stepped back, before Abby could say another word and the doctor followed her silently.

Surprisingly, it was Ontari who had already sprang into action during their short absence and the girl kneeled down in front of Marie. The younger girl was shaking almost uncontrollably now.

“Marie” the Ice Nation nightblood addressed the blonde girl in a soft and gentle tone. She pushed her own worries and confusion about what the changes with the Trikru general would mean to her, to the back of her mind, focusing her attention solely on the younger girl.

It seemed to take Marie long moments until she blinked a few times and a little focus returned to her grey eyes, tears still rolling down her cheeks.

Marie surprised both Anya and Abby by letting herself lean down against Ontari’s chest. Ontari gently enveloped the younger girl into her strong arms, stroking over her soft blonde hair and whispering nonsense words into her ears.

Anya watched with narrowed eyes how the Skykru doctor roamed through her back, pulling out a syringe and filling it with a clear liquid, what she guessed to be the sedative. She still did not feel comfortable with the thought of sedating her charge in the first place. She watched conflictedly how the doctor bent over Marie and simply quickly injected her with the sedative without any kind of forewarning.

Marie’s grey eyes snapped to the doctor in alarm when the slight stinging sensation of the application registered in her mind and her own confusion at what had just happened was mirrored within Ontari’s dark eyes.

“What was that?” Marie asked immediately, voice slightly shrill as she gave Ontari a careful push to make the older girl retreat a little from her space. Her grey eyes looked almost accusingly at Abby as she rubbed over the injection side.

Anya crouched down in front of Marie as well, addressing the girl in a soothing tone “You do not need to worry. It is merely a sedative. You will wake up soon”. The general tried to keep her own worry out of her tone, but she was not sure she succeeded completely, if Ontari’s threatening glare towards Abby was any indication.

Marie seemed to fight against the effects of the sedative, fighting her body trying to drift off and her voice quivered noticeably “I don’t wanna sleep …Anya…”

Being addressed by her charge in such a pleading tone and not being able to actually offer her more assistance than being close to her, pulled hard at Anya’s conscience.

She caught the girl’s body as the sedative took complete effect and Marie slumped forward.

Abby had the decency to look somewhat affected from Ontari’s protective antics, but she nonetheless directed Anya to place the girl’s unconscious body on a bed.

“You can wait outside…” Abby tried to offer to Anya, but the general resolutely shook her head in immediate denial.

Ontari watched in obvious alarmed confusion how the doctor started to undress the younger girl and Anya caught the girl staring at a dagger strapped to her own thigh.

“She needs to be examined for internal injuries” Abby explained to the dark-haired girl, trying to sooth her somewhat. Clarke had told her only briefly who the girl was, but it had been enough to understand that she should not underestimate Ontari and her desire to protect Marie might easily turn violent.

Ontari’s dark eyes seemed to widen in a mixture of disbelieve and confusion, but they switched from Abby to Anya.

The general had stepped closer to the bed and an almost pained expression seemed to linger on her face as she watched the doctor undress Marie efficiently.

“Ontari, wait outside” Anya ordered the Ice Nation nightblood without looking at her, keeping her eyes fixed on Marie’s relaxed features.

Ontari contemplated to object with the order, but the general’s words from earlier echoed through her mind. The general had asked her to trust her and predicted that she would not always agree with her orders, but that she expected to be obeyed without question nonetheless. A small part of her mind had to acknowledge that she did not truly wish to witness this kind of examination as the doctor started to bend Marie’s limps, exposing her genitals. The nightblood felt sick to her stomach suddenly and she turned abruptly storming out of the room, she did not know why she was shaking all of a sudden, or why there were tears burning in her eyes. She could not remember the last time, she had cried and she did not know, why she was so upset now.

Ontari was acutely aware of the guards watching her and she glared at them, with thinned lips. She had no idea, where to go now. Would the other novitiates be training now?

She was saved from having to stand on the corridor indecisively as the elevator opened at the end of the corridor and the commander herself swept out of it.

Lexa’s green eyes quickly took in the upset state of the nightblood girl. She did not know, why Ontari was standing on the corridor.

“Where are Anya and Marie?” the commander asked the dark-haired in a calm tone, the immediate worry apparent within her green eyes.

“Inside…” Ontari said, her voice suddenly refusing to work, as tears started to blur her gaze slightly and she forcefully tried to swallow, to steady herself again.

“Is Abby still with them?” Lexa questioned once again, but her worry now included Ontari. She had never seen the Ice Nation nightblood in such a state.

“She wants to examine her for internal damage…” Ontari answered monotonously, clenching her teeth together afterwards.

Lexa nodded slightly confused “Come with me” she ordered calmly. Anya would surely tell her later what this was supposed to mean and it was obvious Ontari should not be left on her own at the moment.

 

 

 

Chapter 168

Abby was aware of the general’s brown eyes following her every move. She saw how the general stood beside the bed, her whole body tense. The woman seemed oddly misplaced standing there without any purpose.

She would have felt better examining the child without her constant watch, but Abby knew better than to try to convince the fierce Trikru woman again to step outside at least for a few minutes.

Abby started with the worse part of the examination. A worried frown flashed over her features, when the child’s body seemed to tense under her touch. Had the sedative not been strong enough?

Anya must have noticed the sudden tensing of Marie’s body as well and sat on the edge of the bed on the other side, trying not to stand in the way of the doctor. She gently grasped one of the girl’s hands into her own and caressed the smaller hand soothingly, hoping that Marie would feel her presence and it would calm her at least somewhat.

Anya had stopped watching the other woman inspect Marie’s body. She did not wish to truly see, what she was doing exactly, she kept her gaze locked on Marie’s features instead. The girl’s face kept on scrunching up with agitation and Anya caressed her cheek softly, murmuring reassurances to her unconscious charge.

Memories of being handled against her will and under the effects of sedation within the harvest chamber of Mount Weather invaded Anya’s mind unbidden and the general tried hard to shoo them from her thoughts again, as she felt the hairs on the back of neck rise in reaction of her body.

Time seemed to pass slowly as Abby continued with her examination. Anya only let go off the girl’s hand when Abby wanted to turn Marie onto her stomach and inspect her backside. Her mind was turmoiled with the question what had prompted Nia to subject Marie to such extreme measures of torture, the sweet child had done nothing to deserve such treatment.

Anya took over re-dressing Marie from Abby once the Skykru doctor took a step back from the bed, she did not wish for her charge to have to be exposed like this against her will for even a second longer than necessary. 

The general waited impatiently with a baited breath for Abby’s verdict of what she had found.

The doctor stored away her tools carefully, sorting through her thoughts before she addressed the waiting other woman relieving her from her obvious anticipation “I found some hymenal scarring and slight internal scarring in addition, so there definitely has been penetration involved, but it is unlikely she will require surgical treatment. It should heal on its own without any treatment with time.”

Anya’s brows knitted together in confusion, not understanding some of the terms Abby had used. But she instantly felt red hot anger course through her veins at the confirmation of just how far Nia had gone. If she ever came face to face with the Ice queen, the general was sure to inflict the most gruesome and slow death possible to the woman. She clenched her teeth together forcefully, trying to keep hold of her immense anger.

Abby’s almost tentative voice called Anya’s attention from her all-consuming fury at least partly. “Marie might experience some degree of discomfort resulting from the examination. She is bound to be confused, when she wakes, you need to be here for your charge then, Anya”.

The general nodded curtly, she would not leave the child on her own. She may be angry beyond imagination, but she would not abandon her duty to Marie again. Anya tried to calm herself forcefully, she would be of no help to Marie if she let go control of her emotions like that.

Abby sighed as she finished packing up her equipment in silence. She could not offer any more assistance here, so she nodded to the general in farewell and left her with her charge. Abby doubted Marie would confide into her anything after she had basically misused her trust to examine her in such an intimate way without discussing it with the child beforehand. The girl was bound to feel violated, but she had seen herself that Marie had obviously started to develop new trust for the general and as it seemed for the dark-haired girl as well.

Abby doubted that Marie would benefit from what had traditionally been a therapy executed by a psychologist. It would probably help the young girl better if the girl got into a routine in Polis. As Anya had said the girl had started to confide to Ontari and she was convinced she would continue to work through the trauma with the support of the general and the nightblood girl, maybe even the commander’s.

Her place was not within the capitol but with her own people and she wished to return, she did not feel well leaving Skykru in Markus’ hands alone. Clarke might hide it well, but it had been painfully obvious that her daughter still did not feel comfortable in her presence. Abby still wished to convince he daughter to return to Skykru, but she was not blind. Abby had seen how they had looked at each other, how they seemed to gravitate into each other’s direction subconsciously. She had seen that something had grown between Clarke and the commander, she did not understand it one bit, nor did she want to support a possible relationship between the two young women. Abby could not deny that she had gotten glimpses of a woman behind the persona of the commander, but how Clarke could have seemingly forgiven her for the betrayal at the Mountain, the doctor could not fathom. She knew her daughter well enough by now, Clarke would not leave the capitol willingly, so she had to accept her decision even though she did not share it.

Anya watched the Skykru doctor sweep from the room in silence and her brown eyes returned to Marie’s pale face. She still held the girl’s smaller hand and let her fingers glide over her knuckles gently, the repetitive motion felt soothing to herself as well.

It did not take long until Marie started to show signs after the sedative finally wearing off. The girl’s body tensed and the child turned onto her side slowly, curling in on herself, but her fingers closed around Anya’s hand.

“Marie…” Anya addressed her charge in a soft tone, giving her smaller hand a slight squeeze.

The girl groaned pitifully, as consciousness slowly returned to her.

“It is alright, my little star” Anya soothed the girl, keeping up her gentle caress of Marie’s fingers.

Marie’s grey eyes were confused and her voice had a whiny quality to it “It hurts…”.

The tears glistening inside her charge’s eyes felt like a physical punch to the gut to Anya and there was nothing she could do to take the child’s pain away. Marie seemed to curl herself together even tighter, but she kept a firm hold on Anya’s hand.

“It will fade” Anya promised in what she hoped to be a reassuring way. She did not know if Marie should be given a tea to help with her discomfort as Abby had not mentioned anything. It was obvious that her charge was confused of the origin of her physical pain, so she tried to explain that the Skykru doctor had to examine her to make sure that she would not suffer from any problems later.

Marie nodded with a miserable expression, the pain had faded before after all and no one had held her hand then.

 

Lexa motioned the Ice Nation nightblood in the direction of her quarters.

“Have you had something to eat after breakfast yet?” she asked the girl in a kind tone and when Ontari shook her head in the negative, Lexa ordered a guard to send for Alira. The commander had wondered why Anya had missed to attend the meeting in the afternoon, but she was sure her general would not have missed it out of carelessness.

Ontari followed the commander in silence, her expression still highly troubled. Her stomach seemed to roll uncomfortably at just the thought of eating anything now.

Lexa watched the younger girl step into her quarters with obvious unease. She had discussed Ontari’s inclusion in Marie’s education from now on with Anya. She agreed with the fact that Ontari still needed to learn a lot about life in general if she ever hoped to qualify as a justly commander. She had learnt enough about ruthlessness and strength, but compassion and wisdom had been mostly lacking from her upbringing. She had not shared a close bond to any of her novitiates so far, but on the other hand none of them had ever been this old.

She could not deny that the Ice Nation nightblood had changed a lot since she had arrived in the capitol, but Lexa still found it hard to truly trust her. The girl’s connection to Marie was honest though and it showed by how affected she clearly was by whatever had transpired before she had arrived in the top floor of the tower.

“Ontari, can you tell me, what has happened again?” Lexa questioned the younger nightblood after she had motioned her to sit down on the couch.

It was obvious Ontari still felt uncomfortable, she sat stiffly and tense on the couch, ready to spring up any second.

Ontari took a deep breath, but she nodded and said “The general …” she started, but corrected herself quickly “I mean, Anya, she talked with me in the woods around Polis. We left Marie with the Skykru doctor. Anya said I could become a sort of second to her …”

Lexa nodded in acknowledgement, she had known already that Anya would propose exactly that to the Ice Nation nightblood.

“…when we returned Marie did not even realize so …” Ontari narrated and her dark eyes were shining with concern for the younger girl “… she said …” Ontari’s voice broke slightly.

“It is alright” Lexa promised in a reassuring tone and kept her expression neutral and encouraging, waiting for the other nightblood to continue.

“I don’t know, what Marie had said before, but when we entered, she seemed so far away…” Ontari continued after a few moments, her voice heavy and quivering slightly “…she said that Nia expected her to do something for her … we have not heard what … but …” she broke off again.

“But what?” Lexa prodded in a soft tone and waited again. She was surprised to notice tears shining in the dark girl’s eyes.

“She said, that Nia would touch her…” Ontari’s voice screeched slightly and her hands balled into tight fists “…she would touch her first… and how it had hurt…”

Ontari’s voice gave out again and Lexa could see her trying to blink away the tears, but failing and a tear slide down her cheek, she whipped it away immediately, almost furious with herself.

Lexa had to take a deep breath herself at this revelation. She had feared that Nia would not have stopped at anything, but she had hoped that Marie had been spared at least something. She stood from the armchair and started pacing angrily in front of the fireplace.

Ontari had obviously not been finished yet with her narration and Lexa turned to the face the younger nightblood, when she had regained her voice, it still shook noticeably though.

“The Skykru doctor said she needed to be checked for internal damage…” Ontari seemed to breathe almost furiously now “… she sedated her without any kind of forewarning …” the accusation was palpable in her tone, but it turned to confused horror a second later “…she undressed Marie and the examination looked horrible … Anya had sent me out only moments before you arrived” the nightblood finished, whipping away new tears running down her cheeks.

Lexa nodded in understanding.

A knock announcing Alira’s arrival interrupted Lexa before she could say anything in response and the commander was internally grateful for the interruption.

The handmaid already carried a tray with dinner, it would suffice for the both of them. The older woman was visibly confused to find the commander in the company of the Ice Nation nightblood, but she did not say anything as she placed the dinner on the table.

Lexa was trying hard to keep hold on to a calm façade. Her emotions and thoughts were in deep uproar, but she would not show that in front of Ontari.

Alira went around the room calmly, stoking the fire, collecting clothing for the laundry and lighting various candles.

“Eat” Lexa ordered the younger nightblood girl calmly and sat back down opposite of Ontari.

The girl looked at her with an almost tortured expression, but she obediently took something from the plate and started to eat.

Lexa’s brows knitted together, when the girl suddenly sprung to her feet only a few seconds later with a frantic look in her dark eyes.

“Ontari…” Lexa addressed the girl sternly, while Ontari suddenly bend over in the middle of the room and vomited what she had just forced herself to eat.

Alira watched the proceedings with a sigh “I will prepare a tea” she said to the commander and send a guard for one of her younger handmaidens to clean the mess up again.

Lexa felt a small surge of guilt at seeing the nightblood in such a state. It was obvious that her being a witness to it, only added to her discomfort.

“It is alright, Ontari” she assured the girl calmly and stepped closer to her, motioning her to sit down again, but being close enough to steady her, should she falter.

“I am sorry…” Ontari offered faintly once Alira offered a cup with streaming tea to her.

The commander shook her head “It is understandable that your stomach is upset, there is nothing to apologize for” she told her firmly.

Lexa had to force herself to eat something as well. No matter what she took, it seemed to turn into dust in her mouth and she forcefully had to swallow at least a few bites.

It was obvious Ontari was lost in her own thoughts. The girl turned the cup in her hands absentminded and her dark eyes seemed to watch nothing in particular.

Lexa dismissed both handmaidens, once Alira had finished and the mess had been cleaned, with a simple waving gesture.

The commander was lost in her own thoughts and she did not catch the whispered question from Ontari at first, but she felt her dark eyes fixed on herself questioningly.

She waited for the nightblood to repeat her question and her heart gave a painful tug, when she finally understood the single word.

“Why?” the simple word kept on resonating loudly within the commander’s mind and she felt a strange mixture of helplessness and anger coursing through her veins. She had asked herself the same question already for what felt like a thousand times, but she had not come up with a reasonable answer. There simply was no explanation, nothing could justify what Nia had done to Marie.

Lexa shook her head, feeling her eyes misting over with tears as well, but she chose to focus on the anger instead “There is no reason, Ontari. Nia is simply a vile creature…” her voice shook slightly with barely suppressed fury and she clenched her jaw together tightly.

Ontari nodded “I see that now” she agreed honestly. She had already understood before that Nia had not been as honest in her intentions, as she had been made to believe. But now, even she was unable to keep on the almost holy image of the Ice queen in her mind, she had painted as a child.

“Will she survive that?” Ontari suddenly asked.

Lexa frowned slightly at the seemingly off-hand question, not understanding where it should be hinting at and she looked at the girl with a raised brow in silence, waiting for her to elaborate.

Ontari sighed under her breath. She had no idea, if the general had told the commander everything she had heard the night before. But hearing that Marie had contemplated to kill herself, had shocked her beyond reason and the irrational fear stayed within her mind, that the girl could still be harbouring such tendencies. She did not wish to break Marie’s trust, but she thought that commander would need to know.

“I do not know, if or what the general told you about Marie’s conversation with me last night” she started, trying to regain some calmness “But Marie had said that she had thought about killing herself, to end her suffering…” she could not force her voice to remain steady, the shock of this realization still too fresh and deep.

Lexa’s frown deepened visibly. Anya had failed to mention this aspect to her yet. Abby had already told them that people who suffered through something like Marie had, sometimes developed suicidal thoughts, but they had not been aware that the girl already had had them. She felt something clench inside her painfully at this new piece of information. At least the younger nightblood’s question made perfect sense now.

She answered it resolutely though “Marie is strong. She will survive and get stronger” the commander assured Ontari and her green eyes connected intently with her dark ones. Lexa did not feel as confident about this sentiment, as she tried to appear in front of her oldest novitiate. But she needed to believe within her own words.

The most logical consequence was that Marie truly could not be left alone for now, until they were sure the girl had recovered. Lexa knew, it would destroy Anya and probably herself, if their charge simply gave up and ended her life, they would not allow that, they could not.

Marie was strong, she had no doubt about that fact in her mind. The girl had possessed a strength already when she had met her for the very first time. Lexa hoped that their combined support would be enough for Marie to re-connect with her own strength again.

 

 

Chapter 169

When Clarke returned from her rounds through the streets of Polis, visiting those patients who were unable to make their way to the tower themselves, the better time of the day had already passed.

The blonde sighed under her breath, she had hoped to find some time to see Lexa in between the many of the commander’s duties. But she understood now, just how thinly spread the young leader truly was. She absolutely no idea how the brunette had managed to lead the grounders with such success without collapsing and caving in from sheer exhaustion and stress.

Clarke’s thoughts halted abruptly and stopped their circling around Lexa, when she promptly ran into her mother as she set foot into the basement of the tower.

As if against her conscious will and more a reflex from her subconsciousness, Clarke felt her features harden, as she mentally prepared for the confrontation she was expecting. She was not foolish enough to believe that her mother had finally accepted that she would never regard Arkadia as her home.

“How did it go with Marie?” Clarke asked before her mother could say anything, hoping to keep her attention on Marie and away from herself.

“As well as it could” Abby answered her daughter, but she wanted to speak to her in privacy.

Clarke’s brows furrowed at the request to speak in her quarters, but she nodded. She sighed, it was late enough already that Lexa could have returned early from a meeting. She knew that the other woman had wanted to find time to spend it with Marie, trying to re-connect with her slowly. So, it was absolutely possible that Lexa would already be within her quarters. Clarke had moved over into the commander’s quarters weeks ago and she had no idea, if the quarters she had been assigned before, were still available.

“We should speak in your quarters” Clarke grumbled out, fighting hard to keep herself from blushing. She did not know, if her mother had already caught on with just how deep her relationship with Lexa had grown. She had not truly planned to speak about it with her mother anyway; she thought they had long passed the right moment to have a mother-daughter talk. Since her father’s execution their relationship had never been the same and Clarke did not feel inclined to try to change much about that. She was finally at home and at peace in Polis, she did not need her mother’s blessing for that.

Abby slightly narrowed her eyes in suspicion at her daughter, but she nodded mutely. She knew that such discussion should not be held in the halls, where they did not know, who would be listening to them.

“You have been out all day to visit patients?” Abby asked, switching the conversation to a lighter topic. She had heard talk about just how involved Clarke was now as a healer in Polis, it seemed her daughter had managed to carve herself another title beside Wanheda and she had heard that she was well respected in the capitol.

Clarke nodded curtly, she enjoyed working as a healer. She could not discourage all of her patients from calling her Wanheda, but she could live with the title of a healer far easier and most of her patients accepted her wishes to be called just that when they finally noticed just how uneasy the name of Wanheda made her. Lexa and Anya both had tried to explain to her several times that Wanheda was a title of great honour for them, but she did not wish to be honoured in such a way.

She sighed under her breath, although her mother seemed to try quite hard to hide her disappointment at their continued distance, she still saw it flashing through her eyes. So, Clarke elaborated in what she hoped to be a friendlier tone “The citizens of Polis have accepted me well as a healer. A handful of healers work in the tower and I have found my place with them”.

Abby nodded and after she had swallowed forcefully, she commented in an honest tone “I am proud of what you are doing, Clarke”.

“Thank you” Clarke nodded quickly and averted her eyes again.

Fortunately, they had reached the small quarters which had been assigned to her mother, located in the middle of the tower and she followed her inside.

“What had you wanted to talk about?” Clarke asked immediately. She could see in the tenseness of her mother’s whole posture, that she would fail to divert her attention, if she tried to.

“I will leave Polis and head back to Arkadia as soon as possible” Abby proclaimed curtly.

Clarke nodded with a slight frown, mentally preparing herself for the argument she was convinced would follow and she hardened herself even further. There was nothing her mother could say to sway her mind and leave Lexa. She was sure the brunette would let her leave immediately, without even trying to argument with her, simply because she was such a self-sacrificing person, that it almost hurt to think of her in such a way. Clarke had needed along time to understand just how far Lexa’s devotion and willingness to put all and everyone’s needs before her own. In the back of her mind the argument she had had with Lexa the prior night was still fresh and she was convinced a small part of the young leader would even be relieved if she were to leave Polis and return to Arkadia, away from the dangers she was put in simply by being close to Lexa.

Clarke lightly shook her head, to shoo such thoughts from her mind. She would not willingly leave Lexa, not now, not ever. “I will not come with you, so don’t even try to…” Clarke retorted in a hard tone, not giving her mother any room to try to sway her mind.

She was surprised by the open defeat on her mother’s features for a moment. She had expected anger and probably a screamed tirade, but seeing her mother like this, felt worse somehow.

“I know” Abby acknowledged in a tired tone “You have found your place here, I can see that…”

“But?” Clarke checked, eyes still slightly hardened. She had never expected her mother to give up so easily.

“I hope you know what you are doing with the commander” Abby commented, voice slightly cautious, but still tinted with a hint of criticism.

Clarke’s lips thinned visibly “Who has told you …?” she begun to ask, but was interrupted quickly.

“I am your mother, Clarke” Abby shook her head with a sigh “I am not blind. I see the way you look at each other. You may think to be subtle…” she paused for a second “… why her?”

Clarke looked away for a moment before she answered truthfully “I love her, mom”.

Abby nodded “I truly hope you know what you are doing…” her voice trailed off tiredly. A relationship between her daughter and the commander could turn into disaster for all of them.

Clarke inclined her head in a nod “I do” her voice was full of conviction.

Abby nodded again “I will not be able to offer any real help to Marie. So, I can return to Arkadia as well”

She would tell Raven in the morning; the young mechanic was having a blast in the capitol. Raven had spent most of her time with Monty, when the boy was not in meetings and he had shown the capitol to her. Some of the vendors in the streets had various pieces of old tech from the previous world and to Raven it seemed like she was a child in a candy shop. Abby guessed they would return to Arkadia with much more baggage than they had come with.

Clarke furrowed her brow in obvious confusion “She still has not said anything to you?” she checked. Clarke had held onto the hope that Marie would open up to her mother.

Abby shook her head “No, she did. But it is unlikely she will again and I doubt she truly needs a therapy in this sense”.

Clarke’s confusion was only increasing and it must have shown on her face.

“Marie confessed today that the rape the Ice queen subjected her to included forceful penetration” Abby explained.

Clarke gasped loudly in reaction and she paled visibly. She felt a painful tug of compassion for Marie, but not just for the poor child, but for Lexa and Anya as well. She knew that both of them blamed themselves at least partly, for what had happened to their charge.

“I needed to examine her for internal damage to exclude that she would need surgery or face problems later. So, I sedated her and examined her” Abby continued, tone forcefully kept light and calm “The scarring is fortunately only light, so there is no need for any treatment.”

Clarke nodded against the huge lump lodged deeply in her throat.

“Marie has started to find trust for Anya and this older girl, Ontari you said was her name” Abby added “They will be better versed to truly help her. Working through such a trauma will take time. She will probably forever carry the scars of that on her soul”.

Clarke nodded again in agreement. She knew that it might take a long time for the young girl to recover and truly overcome what had happened to her. There was no possibility to push her through her recovery either, it would need to happen in her own pacing.

“How has she taken the examination?” Clarke asked, voice noticeably shaken.

Abby shook her head “I left before she woke up again, but Anya stayed with her”.

Clarke frowned lightly, but nodded her understanding “I should check in with them” and she did not mean only Marie and Anya, but primarily Lexa as well. The revelation would be crushing to both women, there was no doubt about that in her mind.

Abby nodded in understanding and watched her daughter stride from the room with a sinking heart. It almost felt as if she had lost her somehow again, but she had to accept that Clarke was old enough to make her own decisions now.

Clarke walked through the halls with quick strides and impatiently tapped her foot as the elevator carried her to the top floor of the tower.

She hovered in front of the door to the general’s quarters indecisively, as she glanced over to the commander’s chambers.

Clarke decided to check in on with Marie first, the girl had probably already woken up from her mother’s sedative or was it least in the process of finally waking.

She lightly knocked on the door to announce her arrival, she had learned long ago that the general never invited someone inside, but her doors were only guarded when the Trikru woman was actually present, only Lexa’s quarters were guarded at all times.

Clarke instantly spotted Anya sitting on the edge of Marie’s bed. The general immediately looked up at the intrusion, but she continued to hold on to the girl’s hand.

Clarke tentatively smiled at the younger girl kindly “How are you feeling, Marie?” she asked in a calm tone.

Marie’s grey eyes shortly connected with Clarke’s blue ones, but the child quickly looked away, pulling her knees slightly towards her chest with a slight groan. 

“Marie, you were asked something” Anya chided her charge “Answer her” although her voice was still gentle, an undertone of strictness had appeared.

Marie mumbled something incomprehensible as response, pulling the general’s hand closer to her chest.

Clarke frowned slightly, it was obvious the girl was not feeling well, she guessed that a slight rest of the sedative would still remain within her system, making her whinier. The way the child clung to Anya’s arm would have been comical, if not for the dire situation.

A mixture of irritation and worry was apparent on the general’s features at her charge’s antics. “She complained about pain” Anya answered Clarke’s question “I do not know if she should get a tea against that”.

Clarke nodded “If Marie does not feel nauseas, there should be no harm in giving her a tea against the pain. She should feel better after a few hours of sleep.” She knew the girl would still feel slightly confused as an aftereffect of the sedative, but it would be worn off in the morning.

“I can prepare one for her now” Clarke offered calmly, with a tight smile, which felt slightly forced.

It was still obvious how taxing the whole situation was to the general as well and it would probably take weeks of small progress and a lot of backsteps for Marie to recover.

Anya nodded mutely, Marie’s grip on her hand was surprisingly strong and the position her arm was twisted in now was anything but comfortable. She sighed under her breath, sweeping a blonde lock from the girl’s forehead gently. It was odd, how the girl now clung to her and seemed so unwilling to let go, when she did not trust her anymore at all.

Clarke walked through the room in silence, she heard Anya whispering some what she assumed to be reassuring words to Marie, as she prepared a tea for Marie. As an afterthought she added valerian to the mixture. It would truly be better for Marie to simply sleep it off now.

She handed the tea over to Anya, when Marie did not show any reaction to the cup at all.

“I will go over to Lexa now” Clarke proclaimed, but was stopped by Anya.

“Was Ontari still outside?” the general asked. She had completely forgotten about the nightblood girl. With a small twinge of guilt, she realized that she had not even told her where to go at all.

Clarke shook her head “I have not seen her”.

Anya coursed under her breath. She had promised the nightblood to be her first only mere hours ago and had already forgotten about her.

“I am sure, she is fine” Clarke reassured the general quickly. She noticed that Marie had uncurled herself slightly and was watching both of them minutely. “I will ask a guard of her location” she proclaimed “Drink the tea, Marie” she addressed the girl.

Marie’s grey eyes narrowed at the healer and Anya hissed slightly, when the girl’s grip got even firmer on her hand.

“Marie, you need to let go now, to drink the tea” Anya reasoned with the girl, trying to pry her fingers lose from the child’s vice like grip. Who knew Marie would be able to exert such strength. Internally it worried her deeply to see her charge so obviously distraught and not truly expressing it either. She was not sure if she would have preferred for the girl to cry in her sorrow.

Getting Marie to let go of her hand proved to be impossible. It almost seemed as if she was the girl’s lifeline at the moment. Anya could not hinder her mind with coming up of an image of the girl curled in on herself and no one there to offer her any kind of support.

Clarke returned quickly telling the general that the commander had taken the nightblood with her into her quarters.

Anya nodded only absentminded, still occupied with trying to convince Marie to drink the tea.

“Marie…” the general tried to pry her fingers loose again, which only prompted Marie to tighten her grip.

“Marie, you will feel better when you drink the tea” Anya tried to reason with her charge and took her other hand, gently losing the girl’s fingers.

Marie’s expression was almost pitiful when the general finally had her hand freed again. The woman carefully pulled her charge into a sitting position and forced the cup of tea into her hand.

The girl took the cup in silence, glancing at Anya shortly, before she only watched the swirl of the liquid in the cup, as she moved the cup through her fingers.

Anya thinned her lips “Drink the tea” she repeated, tone sharper again and the girl’s eyes snapped up immediately. The almost palpable fear in them at her even only slightly raised voice, tore painfully at Anya’s conscience, but the girl obeyed now and drank the tea rather quickly. Internally the general hoped Marie was not scalding her tongue with the way she gulped down the brew so rapidly now.

She frowned slightly when Marie turned on her side facing away from her promptly after handing back the drained cup. The continued silence around the girl irked her to no end.

Her frown only deepened when the girl seemed to fall asleep only a few moments later. Had Clarke given the girl something more than just something against the pain?

Her question was halted when the door to her quarters was opened again and Ontari stepped back inside. The nightblood still looked rather pale and shaken, but her frown deepened when she spotted a tray with dinner in her hands.

“The commander asked me to bring that over” Ontari explained and her dark eyes immediately sought out Marie’s form under the furs.

“Thank you” Anya acknowledged quietly and stepped around the bed, checking mutely that Marie had indeed fallen asleep. She noticed with a slight frown, that even now the child’s features looked troubled.

She did not feel particularly hungry, but she ate something nonetheless.

“Wanheda said that Marie should sleep until dawn” Ontari added shortly.

Anya inclined her head in acknowledgment mutely. The unspoken tension in the room was nearly palpable and it was obvious neither the general nor the nightblood truly felt comfortable in each other’s presence, but their worry over Marie connected them to each other.

Anya sighed under her breath. The nightblood was actually already way too old for her to share a sleeping space, even Marie was on the verge of being old enough to get her own room. Getting used to share her space with Marie had been relatively easy from the beginning, but the general had the distinct presumption that it would not go as smoothly with Ontari, added to the fact that Marie still behaved completely out of character.

“Have you eaten?” the general asked her newly charge. Anya knew she needed to start to think of Ontari as more of just a connection to Marie, anything else would not be fair to the nightblood girl.

Ontari shook her head and a slight blush appeared on her cheeks.

Anya’s brows knitted together in confusion at the untypical reaction, so far, she had seen the nightblood girl as very controlled and tight in her emotions.

“The commander offered something to eat already” Ontari said, slight reluctance and, if Anya interpreted her expression correctly, shame colouring her tone. “I threw up on her floor…”

Anya nodded in silent acknowledgment, watching Marie like this must have upset the older girl way more deeply than she had anticipated. She would need to express her gratitude to Lexa for looking after the nightblood earlier.

“It is late already” Anya said, not trying to embarrass the girl even further. Ontari seemed to understand the unspoken order without further explanation and started to get ready for the night in silence. Anya hoped the morning would be easier again, but she highly doubted so. 

 

 

Chapter 170

Anya’s slight hope that dealing with Marie in the morning would have gotten any easier, had been completely in vain.

The night itself had passed rather uneventful. The general had not heard the girl wake up and vomit again, so she took that as at least something.

The deep dark circles forming under Marie’s grey eyes, a sign she had clearly not slept as much as Anya had anticipated, worried the general.

Marie in fact had woken up some time after both Anya and Ontari had gotten into bed as well. The candles had still been burning and were casting shadows through the room. She had woken up, tense and rigid, cold sweat coating her brow and Marie felt the echo of the familiar pain lingering in her body, disorienting her at first. She had laid in the bed, barely allowing herself to breath, afraid of feeling the queen’s arms pulling her closer again.

She did not know how it had taken her to realize that she was in fact not back in the queen’s bed. Marie noticed with a slight frown not just one sound of breathing, but the breaths of a second person and slowly the memories from the previous day came crawling back into her mind.

Now that she tried to take her surrounding in more deeply, she realized it was warmer in the room than the queen’s quarters had ever been. The furs around her body felt different and were softer somehow, although she was not entirely sure that was not only a trick of her mind.

Turning around in her bed, which was considerably smaller than the queen’s bed, Marie could spot Anya lying in the bed on the one side and Ontari on her other side. She felt her frantically beating heart slowly coming back to normal as she pressed her eyes closed again, repeating in her mind over and over again, that she was safe here.

Marie abruptly opened her eyes again, curling in on herself under the furs and pulling them thigther around her frame. Although the temperature of the room was comfortable, she was shivering strongly and her body did not seem to want to stop. Whenever she closed her eyes, she would feel the queen’s breaths ghosting over neck, her hands pulling her closer, her fingers almost clawing at her skin. Her shivering only increased and Marie let out a small pained whimper, trying to shoo the images from her mind, burnt into her memory forever.

She seemed to be lucky and she had not woken either Ontari nor Anya. Marie was relatively sure they would not have minded.

She remembered the reassuring feeling of Anya holding her hand as she had woken up a few hours ago. Anya had explained to her that the pain she now felt came from an examination.

The thought of the examination brought the Skykru doctor back to her mind and Marie felt anger boiling in her blood. If it were possible, she would go back a few hours and stop herself from letting the words about what had happened with the queen pass through her lips. She wished she could go back and take them back, make sure she never spoke of them ever again.

Speaking to Ontari had been different. The girl had been there with her after all.

Marie pondered the question of why she had spoken to the Skykru doctor at all the whole night, but she had not come up with a reason. It was easier to focus her mind on this question, than letting her thoughts wander to what Abby had said to her.

She watched how the candles finally burnt down, her eyes were already burning from the exhaustion of keeping them open forcefully. Marie felt the distinct desire to stand up and light the candles again or to at least have something which would cast light through the room, but that would surely wake Anya and Ontari.

So, Marie waited through the night, trying to keep her eyes open and not fall back asleep. She was sure that she would only wake from another nightmare, if she did. Marie could have cried in relive, when the first signs of light started to filter through the curtain, proclaiming the impeding dawn, and Anya finally woke and stood up, going into the bathroom at once

Marie sat up in her bed, keeping the furs pulled to her chest. The pain which still had been coursing through her body during the last evening, had thankfully faded and only left a weird awareness behind, which she internally hoped would vanish completely during the day. Ontari seemed to be asleep still, so Marie simply waited in silence for Anya to finish and come out of the bathroom again.

She completely ignored the general’s clearly worried eyes following her every move and did not say a single word, when she slipped out of the bed and went into the bathroom herself, a stack of clothes already in her hand.

Anya sighed as she watched Marie retreat into the bathroom. She had feared already that Marie’s nightmares would have returned with vengeance. Judging from the exhaustion which had been clearly written on the girl’s features, she could not have slept for more than an hour or two. Anya wondered just how the girl had managed to learn to wake up in silence from her nightmares, but she shooed the question from her mind. She could imagine the answer and it would not have been pleasant. But how was she to help Marie, if she did not even realize the girl was suffering?

Supplying her charge with sleep tonics did not seem like a real solution. It would make Marie sleep without nightmares, of course, but Abby had said that working through her trauma in her sleep was an important step to heal.

Before she had taken the girl to hunt, Marie’s sleep had gotten better again. Lexa and she had been sure that their charge would probably be able to sleep through the night, without both of them with her. But even that would not help Marie now, Anya judged that sharing a bed with the child now, would only increase her uneasiness.

The arrival of a handmaid bringing in breakfast woke Ontari as well.

It was obvious that the Ice Nation nightblood was on guard around Anya and the unfamiliar handmaid as well.

Anya sighed under her breath, internally wondering why she had even proposed this idea to Lexa in the first place. Now she had to deal not just with Marie, which was exhausting on its own, but with the nightblood in addition.

At least Ontari did not ignore the presence of the other two women and greeted both with cautious politeness. Her dark eyes quickly searched for Marie in the small room, but sounds coming through the door to the bathroom, gave away the younger girl’s attention before she could truly worry over her absence. e

Anya’s frown deepened when Marie did not return after a few minutes. Snatches of the conversation between Marie and Ontari dealing with the fact that her charge had contemplated to end her own life, flashed through her mind unbidden and a sense of dread grew in her stomach. She did not wish to have to worry for Marie every second, she was not in her eyesight.

Ontari caught up with the tenseness in the general’s features quiet quickly an she saw her brown eyes darting to the door to the bathroom every few moments.

The handmaid had left after some time. The laundry was collected, the fire stocked again and the room quickly tidied up in silence.

Anya broodily turned the cup with tea in her hand fitfully. The sounds coming from the bathroom had stopped some time ago and her stomach coiled uncomfortably without any further sign of Marie. There should not be any blade within the bathroom, so Marie should not be able to slit her wrists or throat open. Would she even do that? Anya truly had no answer to that question any longer. But the bathing tube still had held enough water to drown herself in, with enough willpower.

Breathing out a frustrated sigh, Anya stood from her chair, her patience with waiting snapping and she rapped against the door strongly “Are you finished?” she called inside and strained her ears for an answer.

Ontari watched the restless general with a frown. She did not understand what had her worried to that obvious degree. She wondered, why no one had called her to the morning training until she remembered that the general would oversee her training personally from now on. She internally hoped the general would not be set on accidentally killing herself in combat training, like she strongly suspected the flamekeeper to secretly have hoped for.

Anya had her fist raised to rap against the door again, when Marie had not answered for several minutes, but the door was pulled open from the inside, revealing the blonde girl standing behind it, with a deep scowl on her face.

It took Anya a moment before she realized the reason for her charge’s frustration. Marie had obviously tried to replicate the hairstyle, she had designed for her the day before. But she had failed tremendously at it, her blonde hair looked like a total mess.

Ontari had looked around the general and spotted Marie as well. While the general forcefully kept herself from laughing, the nightblood did not and let out loud laughter.

Marie narrowed her grey eyes at the older girl, her anger obviously mounting, but Ontari did not look impressed at all.

Anya was torn between trying to reassure Marie that there was no reason to be upset and reprimanding Ontari for laughing at the younger girl.

“It does not look like you achieved the look you tried to” Ontari breathed out, still laughing “If you were not trying to look like you fought off a flock of bird, wanting to nest on your head, that is?”

Marie’s eyes narrowed further, but she at least broke her silence “Of course not” she grumbled out, clearly angry with herself and crossed her arms over chest sullenly.

“Pity” Ontari deadpanned, voice still coloured with amusement “Would have been perfect for that”.

The reprimand died on Anya’s tongue and she realized with a flash of an emotion she could not quiet name for the moment, that Ontari did in fact not have any problems on how to deal with Marie. She would have thought that the dark wit and sarcasm she could wield like a sword in battle, would only further unsettle Marie, but the opposite seemed to be the case.

The younger girl was glaring quiet fiercely at Ontari, her lips thinned in silent anger, as she started to try to untangle her hair again. Some of the red bands had obviously gotten knotted up though and she only pulled at them unsuccessfully.

Anya tried to keep her own lips from pulling into an amused smirk and motioned Marie to sit down at the table “Sit” she ordered and she told Ontari to get ready as well. The nightblood nodded and Anya inclined her head in silent acknowledgment at the girl, when she spotted a flash of uncertainty within the depths of her dark eyes.

Marie startled visibly, when Anya slapped her hands from her hair without forewarning and simply started to take over the task of untangling the mess on her head. “Eat” Anya ordered, while her fingers began their work. Marie shortly glanced over her shoulder at the general, a slightly unsettled expression on her face.

“There is no need for you to do your hair yourself” Anya reassured after a moment of silence.

Marie frowned and although the general could not see the girl’s expression, she could guess her reaction without having to see it.

“I should be able to do that” Marie grumbled under her breath, only nibbling at a dry piece of bread reluctantly. Her stomach felt much too queasy to stomach anything really and she had no feeling of hunger. She remembered vividly how impatient Echo had pulled and tugged at her hair, showing her how to braid it. She had not seen the woman often during her time with the Ice queen and she wondered why the woman had brought her to the queen at all. Echo had instilled in her that needing someone to do your hair for you, was weakness; baring your neck to someone else was a sign of trust and trust was deadly and a weakness as well.

Anya shook her head in the negative, keeping her fingers gentle as they worked through Marie’s blonde hair. The girl had truly done a number on it, how she had managed to knot it together like this, was beyond any reason to Anya. “You are the commander’s second” Anya explained, voice firm but still kind “So, your hairstyle reflects your position of honour. It is too elaborate for you to attempt yourself”.

Marie’s scowl deepened in reaction “I want another one then…” she grumbled.

Anya had to strain her hearing to catch the girl’s complaint and she tugged at the girl’s hair in silent warning to mind her tongue “That is not for you to decide” her voice had gotten sharper, but her fingers got gentler again.

Marie sighed under her breath, but nodded in silent acceptance. She bit at her lip uncertainly, insolence had not been tolerated at all by the queen. She had started to accept it as a given that the general would not hurt her physically, but she still did not feel particularly comfortable with the woman standing behind her back and now braiding her hair. Fortunately, the general was obviously well practised and finished with her hair quiet quickly.

Ontari returned to the room just as Anya had finished with Marie’s hair and had sat down again to resume her own breakfast.

Anya frowned at Marie’s plate, it did not look at all like the girl had eaten anything. Ontari’s plate looked more or less full still as well.

“Eat” Anya repeated glancing to both of her charge’s “Both of you” she added for clarity.

Surprise flashed through Ontari’s dark eyes to be included like this as well, but she nodded mutely, sliding back into her own seat.

Marie’s reaction was more of a defiant nature. The young girl shoved the plate away from her, crossing her arms over her chest sullenly again and she glared at Anya “Not hungry” she informed the woman through clenched teeth.

Anya pinched the bridge of her nose, her patience being close to wearing out already. She distinctly remembered that Abby had warned them about the fact that Marie would most likely test all of those around her quickly on how far she would be able to push them. The almost defiant glint in Marie’s grey eyes seemed to be prove to Abby’s prediction, but Anya could also see a slight shadow of fear in the girl’s features.

“Do you feel sick?” the general asked keeping her tone firm and her brown eyes inquiring.

Marie shrugged her shoulders, her arms still crossed over her chest, but she did not elaborate.

“I have told you before that I expect more of an answer than a shrug” Anya snapped sharply at the young girl, which clearly startled Marie.

“A little” the girl finally relented, but she looked at the wall now, turning her face away from the table, arms still firmly crossed in front of herself.

Anya sighed, a slight sliver of worry crossing through her mind. Had Abby overlooked something in her examination? But she recalled that the doctor had said that sleeping problems as well as nausea would be normal signs of the trauma still working through Marie’s system.

“The healers have a tea to settle your stomach” Anya said, standing from the table and quickly ordering a guard posted outside their door to call for such a tea. She could hear Ontari conversing with Marie lowly behind her back.

“You need to eat” Ontari tried to intone to the younger girl under her breath, dark eyes expressing her worry for Marie.

Marie’s grey eyes connected with Ontari’s gaze and she shrugged slightly, uneasiness written clearly over her features “I will just vomit…” she retorted lowly to the nightblood.

“That is what the tea is for” Anya remarked, having caught Marie’s answer as she returned to the table. “Ontari is right though, you do need to eat. Your body needs the nourishment to retain your strength. How do you expect to train otherwise?” she questioned the girl’s logic.

Marie nodded, looking at the plate still filled with food with a doubtful expression. As she stretched out her hand to grab another piece of bread, the only thing she hoped which would not unsettle her stomach even further, Anya’s hand shot out and took her wrist in a light grip, stopping her movement efficiently.

“Wait for the tea” the general ordered in an even tone and instantly let go of the girl’s wrist again. She did not wish for her charge to force herself to eat, only to vomit it out later again, which Ontari had obviously done the evening before. That would surely not help her body either. But they would need to find a solution for the girl’s sleeping problem as well. If she did not sleep and tried to evade sleep, she would only collapse at some time in the near future when her body finally gave out.

 

 

 

 

Chapter 18: Chapter 171 - 180

Chapter Text

Chapter 171

Marie was glad to realize that the tea had truly helped and she did not feel as queasy anymore. She still did not feel any real hunger, so she had stopped eating as soon as the general seemed to be remotely satisfied with the amount of food Marie had forced down her throat. Food had lost its appeal to her a long time ago and nothing seemed to have any taste anymore, but she did not voice her feeling to either Ontari or Anya.

She listened intently as Anya discussed with a woman who had introduced herself as the lead healer of the tower about teas she could be given to help with her sleep. Marie narrowed her eyes in confusion, she was positive she had not woken the general during the night. So, how did the woman even know she had not slept properly?

It was obvious quickly that the healer, Laurel was her name which Marie filed away in her mind, was convinced that providing sleeping tonics to her was not a good idea in the long run. Marie scowled slightly, the idea of being able to sleep without any nightmares sounded enticing and she did not really care that they could be addictive. So, what? She could just keep on drinking them then and not have to fear another nightmare at all, it sounded like a very sound plan to her.

Marie watched on intently when the woman showed a few variations of sleeping tonics to the general, listing off advantages and disadvantages of the concoctions. She tried to remember exactly how the vial of the tonic looked like that the healer was convinced would truly provide a dreamless sleep. Laurel provided Anya with a small vial of the tonic, stressing the fact that Marie should not be allowed to consume the tonic for two nights in a row and how to douse it correctly. Two drops in a cup of water an hour before going to sleep, Marie stored the information carefully in her mind.

Marie had not said a single word during the whole conversation, same as Ontari, but while the blonde girl was fixed completely on the conversation, Ontari watched Marie’s growing interest with a frown. She had a disquieting premonition somehow and she would need to keep a close watch on the younger girl.

When the healer bid her goodbye to the general, she nearly crashed into the commander, who stood in front of the door. Laurel quickly apologized, but the commander only waved her off.

Anya frowned at Lexa’s getup. The commander was dressed in nondescript clothing, suitable for a hunting trip or another outing.

Marie had looked up as well and she narrowed her eyes at the commander. Now that she knew who the woman was, she recognized the woman easily even in nondescript clothing like that. But her green eyes still spoke to something within her, she could not quiet reach yet.

“I will take Marie on a scouting mission today” Lexa proclaimed to Anya. The general raised an eyebrow questioningly at her former second, but it was obvious by the set of her jaw, that the commander had already made up her mind and would not be swayed, no matter what she reasoned now.

Marie looked unsure at the proclamation, that her grey eyes sought Ontari’s dark ones and not Anya’s gaze, felt like a slight slap to the general.

“Weren’t there meeting scheduled for later today?” Anya asked the commander, her eyebrows still raised slightly.

Ontari had subtly nodded at Marie, trying to convey without words to the younger girl that everything would be alright. The nightblood was fairly sure that Marie would not try to assassinate the commander and she could even understand why the commander would wish to spend time on her own with her second. But that would consequently leave her alone with the general, which made her even slightly anxious.

“Cancelled for the day” Lexa retorted simply, impatience colouring her tone to get started making it clipped.

Anya’s frown only deepened. Something must have happened during the night to sour the commander’s mood like that.

 “Come” Lexa addressed the young blonde girl curtly and already turning around.

Now Marie’s searching gaze turned to Anya and the general only inclined her head signalling that it was alright.

When the commander tapped her foot impatiently, Marie almost jumped form her chair to follow the commander’s order. Anya and Ontari watched the younger girl leave in silence.

Marie followed the commander’s quick and fast strides somewhat anxiously. Anya had previously said that the commander and she had decided together that Marie and Ontari would spend a little time with the woman on a daily basis, but going on an outing with her, deviated quiet strongly from that.

Lexa had received a message from the Lake People first thing in the morning. A small troop of Azgeda soldiers had invaded their borders and burnt down several villages near the border after scavenging them beforehand. It meant that their efforts in starving out the Ice Nation were finally starting to show effects. But not only had the Lake People suffered unnecessarily losses, but the clan was complaining loudly also that the coalition had failed in protecting their borders. She had already sent out messengers to their bordering clans asking for reinforcement, but before those troops arrived, there was nothing she could do now. Being forced to remain within the walls of Polis, was starting to grant on her nerves and Lexa missed being out in the woods, free of being the commander, so she took a day out for herself. She had asked Clarke to accompany her, but the blonde had declined, saying that her mother and Raven were leaving soon and she had neglected to spend any time with her friend. Lexa had waved off the blonde’s apology.

Spending time with Marie alone away from her duties would hopefully help to establish at least a tentative bond between them. Gustus and Titus both had not been really convinced in her plan of action, but she had waved both of their arguments off. Even if Marie did try anything, Lexa was skilled enough to defend herself. She would not admit it out loud, but Gustus’ and Titus’ insistence that spending time with the girl alone was to be too dangerous, bruised her pride. Lexa missed the girl’s presence within her life and she could not loose hope to re-connect with the child, she needed to keep onto Clarke’s words there.

It was obvious that the girl did not feel comfortable within her presence any longer and that irked her to no end. She direly missed the times, when she would curl up with the girl, uncomfortably squished into an armchair together or on the bed, and reading to her.

Gustus and Ryder would follow them with some distance, Lexa had not been able to discourage them and she had to agree that travelling without any kind of guarding was too dangerous, now that war was so close again. Although the terrain around Polis was heavily guarded, that did not guarantee that Nia could not have planted some lone assassins within the woods.

Lexa had ordered for her horse to be prepared ahead and she was surprised to see Marie’s reaction to her black mare.

A soft smiled grazed the girl’s lips and her horse instantly met Marie’s outstretched hand, neighing at the girl in greeting.

“Hello, Sontam” Marie whispered to the black mare, scratching over its soft muzzle. Her smile grew slightly, when she spotted Risha as well. The wolf was old enough now, to learn to accompany them on a short hunting trip. 

Her smile froze slightly, when Marie caught the commander’s gaze resting on her.

Lexa had chosen an older horse for Marie, which should not be too complicated to handle for the young girl. She highly doubted riding had been something Nia would have Marie practise.

Marie was given a quiver, together with a bow and a dagger. She inspected the dagger cautiously, she was sure that she had seen such a blade before. She was still pondering the question, where she had seen this dagger before, when the commander ordered her to mount, startling the girl out of her thoughts.

Marie inclined her head and followed the order mutely. In the end, Risha could not accompany them, because the horse which had been assigned to Marie, would not stop being spooked by the wolf and Lexa was too afraid the girl would be thrown off somewhere along their trip.

The commander ordered Gustus to bring the wolf back into her quarters, making sure that the animal would not follow them. The burly guard visibly hesitated in obeying his commander’s words, but he of course, consequently Ryder and Gustus could only start following Lexa and Marie a considerable time later.

Lexa instantly felt better once they rode out of the gates of Polis. She had missed riding, simply for the purpose of doing so.

Marie seemed to feel comfortable on her own horse as well and the girl did not have any problems to keep up with the fast tempo the commander had set.

They rode in silence for what felt like hours, but Marie enjoyed the feeling of the slight wind against her face and inhaled deeply once they reached the outskirt of the woods. She frowned slightly, when Lexa brought her own mare to a stop and dismounted, tying her mare’s reigns on a tree, obviously intending to leave the horse there.

“We will go by foot. Scouting on a horse is not practical” Lexa addressed Marie, keeping watch that the girl got down from the horse without tumbling.

Marie nodded in silent understanding. The royal guard had only practised fighting techniques with her and she had not set foot outside of the queen’s fortress until the day the queen had sent them towards Polis. But it made sense that travelling with a horse would make too much noise through the forest.

She kept a certain distance between herself and the commander, but she followed the woman obediently.

When Lexa lightly scolded her for placing her feet in the wrong way, destroying twigs under her boots carelessly and giving up her position that way, Marie suddenly stopped in her tracks.

Lexa whirled around in mute alarm, when all sounds of movement from Marie stopped abruptly. She frowned, when she noticed that the girl had remained rooted to the spot. Her grey eyes seemed unfocused and confusion was evident on her face.

Marie shook her head after a few tense moments, Lexa’s eyes scanned the trees around them carefully in the meantime.

“Anya called me a baby pauna” the girl commented in a thoughtful tone her brows knitted together as she tried to make sense of the snippets of memories that had flown through her mind suddenly.

She glanced down at the dagger, fastened to her belt, and more memories assaulted her mind. Her grey eyes were visibly widened when they connected with Lexa’s green ones “You gifted me with such a dagger…” the girl’s voice was laced with confusion.

A slight smile tugged at the corners of Lexa’s mouth and she inclined her head in agreement.

Marie fell into step behind the commander, trying to remember what Anya had taught her about walking through the wood with producing the least amount of noise as possible. She frowned when she distinctly remembered Lexa taking her on such an outing before. She remembered how she had hoped the commander would have been more fun on the trip, but the woman had criticised her nearly the same way Anya had, only with a little less bite to her tone.

“Why did you agree to take me on as your second?” Marie suddenly asked, ignoring the fact that if this had been a real scouting mission speaking would have definitely not been allowed.

Lexa slowed her pace, she had not truly planned to scout for real with Marie after all and she had hoped to get the child talking to her in a relaxed manner. She had thought about all the things she would wish to say to the girl, but she seemed to have forgotten all of it.

“Do you remember anything about the Mountain?” Lexa asked Marie, keeping her tone light and her features neutral.

Marie’s brows knitted together visibly as she tried to remember anything. She knew she had seen a series of mountains on their way to Polis, but had that been special mountains? She tentatively asked the commander, but the woman shook her head in the negative.

“After Skykru fell from the sky and Anya had taken you as her second…” Lexa paused for a moment, thinking carefully about how much to tell the girl. She did not wish to overwhelm the girl after all. “…Anya disappeared” she settled on “I had been her second before and I had promised her to look after you, should anything happen to her”.

Marie nodded now deeply in thought. The answer had opened more questions in her mind, than she could formulate simultaneously.

Lexa watched the emotions flicker briefly over the girl’s features. It was obvious, she had learned relatively well on how to make her emotions harder to read, but she did not seem to have kept a tight hold on her guard right now, so Lexa was still able to pinpoint at least a few of them. She did keep her eyes on the trees around them as well.

Marie remembered how she had earned the commander’s dagger, but Anya had been there as well. She distinctly remembered the presence of another girl at the incident, but she was not sure, so she kept her thoughts to herself.

“You can ask whatever you wish” Lexa offered in a kind tone, green eyes honest and expression open.

Marie looked visibly startled at the offer, she nodded slightly after a few moments, but no question came out of the girl’s mouth.

Lexa sighed under her breath, turning her attention more firmly onto their surroundings. She had been scooped up within the tower for too long and she almost felt revived being reunited with a forest.

Marie’s head was starting to hurt, trying to understand the little flashes of memories, which were not enough yet to make sense of them. Questions over questions were coursing through her mind. To top it all off, she could still hear the queen’s words ringing through her mind, no matter how hard she tried to quieten them.

Marie tried to silence her mind completely instead, focusing on the woods.

When Lexa noticed that her charge’s attention had also returned to their surroundings she resumed briefing the girl on which sounds to keep track off. She tried to teach to Marie which signs would show that someone had passed through these woods only recently.

The commander had not expected to find any fresh signs and she felt her body tense in anticipation, when they stumbled onto a fresh trail. It was obvious that the trail had not been left by an animal, the tracks of boots were easy to identify after all.

She silenced Marie quiet sharply, when the girl wanted to inquire what was wrong. Marie had obviously not caught up with what she had found yet, but the girl’s eyes were still inexperienced and she would need further training in tracking soon enough.

Fortunately, Marie seemed to understand the urgency in her eyes and the girl seemed to try additionally hard to remain as quiet as possible.

Lexa took out her sword, when she realized that the trail they had been following met up with another trail, a larger one, left behind by at least five pairs of boots. Without the girl in her company, Lexa would have climbed into a tree and hidden there, but she was sure Marie would give away their position that way. The trail was fresh and the group who had left it behind, could not be far ahead of them.

Lexa motioned Marie into the opposite direction of the trail. The commander was convinced of her fighting skills, but picking up a fight one against six had nothing to do with skill. She would not put Marie into unnecessary danger and she cursed under her breath, she had specifically chosen this part of the forest surrounding Polis, as it was patrolled the most frequently.

Marie felt her heartbeat picking up slightly, she may not understand what exactly was wrong, but something clearly was.

Lexa had no real idea on how far away Gustus and Ryder would be, she had not heard the two guards and it was entirely possible that they had not caught up with them yet.

Marie followed the commander carefully, placing her feet as cautiously as possible and scanning the trees around them.

Suddenly, Marie noticed the gleam of metal reflecting sunshine on their left and she gasped loudly, whirling around.

The commander had also noticed and already charged at the warrior. The red warpaint smeared on the man’s face easily identified him as a part of rebels who had banded together. Lexa growled under her breath at the realization, Titus had been convinced that the rebels would run out of resources soon enough and not a problem to worry about.

Marie watched the fight with widened eyes. The commander’s skill was impressive, the woman moved with a deathly elegance and the warrior did not seem to stand a chance against her. Marie wondered, why Lexa had not killed the man already.

A sense of déjà vu washed through her mind, when Marie noticed a second warrior approaching. The feelings coursing through her mind seemed not be from the presence, the need to protect the woman was all encompassing and Marie charged forward loudly, armed with her dagger.

Lexa felt a flash of fear at the sight of Marie rushing at a second warrior, she had not noticed yet, only armed with a dagger. The man had two swords in his hands and the girl had a clear disadvantage.

Quickly, Lexa finished off the warrior she had previously only tried to subdue, hurrying over to aid Marie. She drove her sword cleanly through his back in the exact moment as Marie managed to get the dagger to the man’s throat, slicing deeply. Blood sprayed from the gash in his throat and the man fell to his knees, gasping for breath, as Lexa pulled out her sword.

Marie’s grey eyes were wide and she was deathly pale, the hand which held her dagger was clenched tightly around the polished handle and it shook strongly.

Marie was trying to reconcile the déjà vu she had just experienced with what had happened only moments ago. She remembered seeing Anya, faced with an opponent and a second one aiming a gun at her mentor, she had charge at the second man almost identically to what she had done now.

Lexa cautiously got closer to the girl. They needed to return to their horses and to Polis, the woods were obviously not as save as she had hoped.

An arrow suddenly wheezed past them, Lexa had heard it barely early enough, to pull Marie behind a tree. The arrow narrowly missing where they had just stood and it embedded itself into the tree with a dull thud.

Lexa looked around the tree cautiously, keeping Marie firmly pressed against it for cover, when she heard sounds of fighting and she let out a relieved breath. Gustus and Ryder had found them.

 

Chapter 172

Marie felt her heart beating strongly, adrenalin still pumping through her blood. She had not heard the wheeze of the arrow and had been startled quite strongly, when Lexa suddenly whirled her around and pressed her against a tree for cover.

The worry within the commander’s green eyes had seemed honest. Marie was slightly confused why it looked like the commander would guard her first and herself later. Was it not the job of a warrior to die for their leader? Marie was not sure any longer, who her leader was supposed to be. The queen or the commander?

She vividly remembered now, how she had been in the forest with Anya and they had encountered two “Mountain Men”. Although she remembered the term, the meaning remained foreign to her. It had been her very first kill. Anya had tried to calm her down and coax her out of the woods back into safety.

Marie followed the commander with slightly unsure steps. She recognized Gustus and Ryder as they killed the last of the rebels. The burly guard who had seemed so calm and understanding, looked deeply unsettled now.

Marie swallowed past a lump forming in her throat, when she looked down at the bodies of the warriors who had just died. 

She heard the commander and Gustus exchanging a few rushed words, but Marie did not catch them. There was only a loud rushing sound in her ears.

She did not understand why looking at the slain warriors had such an effect on her body now. She had singlehandedly killed quite a few warriors during her time with the Ice queen and she had stopped feeling anything as a result, simply doing as she had been told.

Lexa watched from the corner of her eyes how Marie seemed to be caught in a daze. She gently touched the girl’s shoulder to pull her back into the presence. They needed to get moving, there was no way of predicting how many more rebels might be hidden in the woods around them.

Marie startled strongly away from the unexpected touch, but her grey eyes looked almost sheepish when she realized her own volatile reaction.

Thankfully, Lexa did not comment on it and merely told Marie to follow them, as they set out back into the direction of the horses in a quick pace.

Lexa wondered internally what could have upset the girl to this extent. She had seen the numerous kill marks now carved onto the child’s collarbone and she highly doubted Nia would have given Marie even a single one without watching the girl kill someone before. Consequently, Marie must have seen her fair share of deaths and it should not mean so much to her anymore. Lexa shook her head slightly, banishing this train of thought from her mind vehemently. The girl she had come to care about had possessed such a gentle spirit that it was no wonder she had not gotten used to the brutality of death. Could this be a sign of her old self shining through the façade facilitated by Nia?

Guarded by Gustus and Ryder, Lexa was able to keep a part of her focus on Marie. It was obvious the girl was lost in her thoughts and she would surely be of no use, should they run into another group of rebels.

The commander internally noted to gather a few troops and drive the rebels back out of the land of the coalition. Giving them too much space and opportunity to raid villages would only strengthen them. The rebels must have started to truly band together if they even chose to identify themselves wearing the same warpaint.

Marie could not shake the confusion from her mind. She could remember now, how she had reacted to the Mountain Man’s blood drying on her hands and she internally wondered why she had made such a fuss. It had only been blood after all. She felt the blood of the rebel drying on her hands now as well, but she paid it no mind. It was not her own blood after all.

The question she had asked herself earlier, kept on repeating itself in her mind loudly. Why had the commander pushed her to safety first? She knew that the woman cared for her, too many people had told her so for it to be a lie. But still, she was only the commander’s second and would it not be her duty to die for the commander then?

Marie nearly faltered in her step, when she suddenly remembered the almost whispered exchange she had had with Lexa. Asking almost the very same question. She could now clearly see the commander’s green eyes staring back at her empathically, before the woman had crouched down in front of her and she had flung herself into her arms. She could almost feel the commander’s arms around herself again.

Lexa looked at the girl with a worried frown, her hands hovered slightly in front of the girl. Marie seemed to be so lost in her thought, that she had nearly fallen over a log, obviously not focused on where she was going any longer.

Marie shook her head slightly, trying to clear her mind at least somewhat and she felt a blush creep up her neck, when she noticed the commander’s obvious worry at her behaviour.

Marie bit her lips, trying to mask her emotions again. The more of her memories she regained, the harder this seemed to become. Contrasting memories and emotions were being at a constant battle within her thoughts and left her feeling confused and almost drained. Why could she not just remember everything again?

Fortunately, they did not encounter any more rebels on their way back to their horses. Marie mounted her own horse in silence, waiting for the commander to signal their departure. Another memory flashed up in her mind, but it was hazy around the edges. She remembered being hoisted in front of the commander onto her horse. The woman had pulled her closer to herself and kept her upwards. She wondered why she had shared a mount with the commander at all? But her mind remained frustratingly empty.

The ride back to Polis was uneventful and rather quick. Lexa had set a fast pace for them and it seemed as if Marie managed to hold up with them well enough.

Marie internally wondered what Ontari and Anya might have done in her absence. Thinking about Ontari being Anya’s second now as well, pulled forth contrasting emotions in her mind. She was glad that the nightblood now shared quarters with her and the general as she truly felt most comfortable in the dark-haired girl’s company. But the fact that Anya would now also care for Ontari in a way made a slight flash of anger and even envy course through her veins. A part of her knew that these feeling were petty and unwarranted, but she still could not stop them completely.

Marie was pulled out of her thoughts when they arrived back in Polis, the stables seemed to be in uproar. She tilted her head slightly in confusion, wondering what might have happened.

She watched Lexa dismount her mare in one graceful fluid motion and hand over the reigns to a second working at the stables. The stables master appeared quickly and rapidly explained that one of the commander’s mares was foaling, but their seemed to be problems and the mare did not allow anyone into her box.

Marie was startled slightly when Gustus suddenly appeared in front of her and offered a hand to her to dismount as well. She blushed a little, she had simply been too caught up in her own head to think about dismounting. She mutely regarded his offered hand for long silent moments, before she finally took it.

It was obvious the commander was worried for her mare. Lexa was still slightly exasperated that Skairasha was carrying a foal at all. A stallion and her own mare had broken the fences to their boxes to be together. If the stablemen had been more attentive they would have been able to prevent the whole situation.

Lexa followed the stables master inside and Marie tentatively trailed behind as well. She did not know how many horses the commander possessed personally and she somehow hoped it was not one of those she now remembered.

Lexa was arguing with the stables master, a seasoned warrior in his own right, about going into the box herself and had not paid any mind to Marie.

The girl peered around the two adults and she frowned, when she recognized the white mare. She distinctly heard how the stables master reported that the mare seemed to have gone into labour hours ago and that they were fearing to lose both of them soon.

There seemed to be an immense amount of blood splattered into the straw in the white mare’s box and the mare trampled around agitatedly. 

Marie absently wondered why she had not realized how huge the mare seemed to have gotten, she remembered that the white horse had previously looked rather athletic, but the roundness of her body seemed unable to overlook now.

Instinctively, Marie slipped through a crack in the fence into the box of the white mare. The horse immediately stopped her trampling and her dark eyes seemed to be filled with panic.

Lexa felt her heart drop into her stomach, when she noticed Marie slipping through the fence. The stables master had been convinced that Skairasha could not be approached any longer, obviously one of the more experienced grooms had already been severely injured a few hours prior. Her eyes widened in rapt surprise when her mare seemed to react instantly to Marie.

Marie carefully stretched out her hands, soothingly touching the horses muzzle. From the corner of her eyes she could see that the fence was pulled open completely behind her. But she returned her whole focus to the mount when the horse neighed, butting up her head and ears flicking around. “Ssshh…” Marie tried to sooth the animal and her grey eyes stayed locked with the horse’s dark ones.

Lexa followed the stables man into the box carefully, she could see Gustus hover at the edge of the box uncertainly.

When the stables master walked around the mare cautiously, keeping his eyes flicking to the mare, trying to look out if she prepared to kick out again, Marie obviously tried to keep the mare’s attention on herself and surprisingly seemed to succeed quiet well.

“The foal’s hindlegs are pushing out first…” the stables master returned to Lexa’s side, worry creasing his brows. Foals in this position were rarely born alive and the birth had been going on too long already, he doubted the foal was even alive anymore. But if they did not get it out soon, the mare would perish in addition.

Lexa had stepped up behind Marie, a slight smile on her lips and her voice was grateful “You are doing great” the commander commented.

Marie looked slightly startled for a moment, but her hands kept on caressing the mare’s head gently “She is in pain” she commented, grey eyes empathetic and almost screaming at Lexa to do something and help the horse.

“We will need to pull the foal out. The contractions are decreasing already” the stables man said to Lexa.

Lexa nodded mutely. She cautiously took a step closer to her mare, letting her hand glide over her strong neck, she turned to the stables master slightly “Safe her” she commanded and the warrior sprang into action quickly.

Skairasha let herself be handled by the stablemen more willingly, now that she was soothed by Marie and the commander. Lexa was surprised again by the fact of just how instinctively Marie seemed to have reacted to the animal. How could a child who had never come into contact with animals connect so effortlessly with them?

Trikru believed that horses were an excellent judge of character. You could force a horse into submission, but you would never have your mounts full loyalty. Marie’s easy way of dealing with her warhorses had prompted Lexa in the beginning to not only see the weak Skygirl, but to recognize her for what she truly was. The child must have been gifted with a strong and gentle spirit to be approved off by her horses like this.

Marie kept on whispering soothing words to the horse, seemingly ignoring Lexa’s presence at the moment. But the girl smiled softly at the commander, once they heard the proclamation that the foal was out now.

Marie had understood what the foal’s position must mean without the words being vocalized, so she kept the mare from looking back.

Lexa’s brows creased in confusion at the girl’s behaviour. “You can let go of her now” the commander addressed Marie, clapping her horse on her neck in an acknowledging manner. She was glad her mare had survived the birth.

Marie shook her head vehemently, her grey eyes surprisingly hard as she met the commander’s gaze. “She does not have to see her dead foal” Marie snapped almost harshly.

Lexa was taken aback slightly by the girl’s train of thought. She knew that foals with a complicated birth were almost never born alive, so she had not even entertained the thought of the foal surviving, it had simply been about saving her mare from death as well.

The commander took a step back from Marie and her horse and her green eyes widened in surprise. The stables master seemed to be frantically working on the foal. Contrary to expectations the foal began to move in the same moment.

The foal let out a weak neigh and Skairasha butted against Marie quite strongly, making the girl stumble back a step. Marie’s face morphed from an expressionless mask, to almost pure joy when she noticed the quivering foal standing upright in the straw behind the white mare.

“It survived…” her voice was full of wonder as she watched the white mare gently nudge its foal, prompting the foal to fall down and the mare began to clean her foal.

The stables master and the commander shared Marie’s wonder in silence, until the man said that it would be better to leave the horses be for now and give mother and foal time to acquaintance with each other without disturbances.

“It is beautiful…” Marie commented, voice still tinted with wonder, when Lexa finally ushered her out of the box with a gentle hand on the girl’s shoulders.

Although the mare’s coat was purely white, the foal had dark grey bits of fur as well. It almost looked as if the foal was wearing grey soaks and a grey mask.

Lexa inclined her head in silent agreement. Following her instincts, the commander proclaimed “You will be training the foal personally in the future”.

Marie blinked at the commander in apparent confusion and her brows knitted together.

A small smile ghosted over the corners of Lexa’s lips as she said “The foal will be yours”

“Really?!” Marie almost squealed shrilly, eyes shining and a surprised smile enlightening her features.

Lexa nodded mutely. Marie would need a mount of her own in the future and it seemed fitting to gift her with the horse which only lived because of her. Anya would surely tease her about it later though.

“Can I visit them later?” Marie questioned eagerly almost as soon as they had stepped outside of the stables again.

Lexa raised a brow in amusement at the girl’s enthusiasm, being reminded strongly of how the child had usually behaved previously.

“Anya already gave you permission to visit the stables, if you tell someone beforehand” Lexa commented nonchalantly, but her green eyes were soft.

Marie nodded cautiously, obviously surprised by the fact that the commander already knew of that. Internally Marie chided herself, of course the general would have discussed such a decision with the commander beforehand. But did that also mean Anya would tell Lexa everything she had or would tell the general? Marie honestly did not know and the question unsettled her.

Lexa watched the emotions flashing over Marie’s features with a slight frown, before the girl’s face was almost completely blank once again. She sighed under her breath mutely, the girl had been so easy to read months ago, that it was disconcerting to deal with her now. She felt like every little step which seemed to have been progress, was destroyed by three steps back now.

She had hoped to connect a little stronger with the girl on this outing, but it had not worked out as well, as Lexa had secretly hoped. She wondered what had prompted the girl to trust her truly in the first place and the realization almost knocked the breath out of her, as she remembered the way the first few days sharing her tent with the girl had been. Marie had not connected with her effortlessly in the past and had only truly started to get closer to her in Anya’s absence. Lexa marvelled the question if Marie even would find a new connection to her now. Marie had Anya now and as it seemed Ontari as well, maybe that would already prevent the child from wanting to connect with her again. Nothing was forcing her to do so now after all and the realization felt like a blow to the stomach.

Lexa left Marie in front of the general’s quarters without another word and Marie watched the commander retreat with confusion written over her features. Had she done something to offend the woman? Although she did not feel entirely comfortable in the commander’s presence she thought that their outing had gone over well, minus the encounter with the rebels, she had even gotten back some more memories.

 

Chapter 173

Against the general’s explicit proclamation that the woman was aware of Ontari’s fighting skills, the general had forced Ontari to the training pits shortly after Marie had left with the commander and had let Ontari show of her skills in each and every thinkable weapon.

To Ontari’s internal horror the general had quickly caught up with the fact that she may be very well versed in fighting with swords, staffs and without weapons, but her skills were lacking severely when it came to wide range weapons. Her accuracy with a bow and throwing knives were next to none existent.

Ontari had grumbled to the general that she surely would not need to master all kinds of weapons, that it would definitely be enough to strike down her opponents with her swords.

Anya would have none of that of course, she had simply stared the nightblood girl down. “And what pray tell will you do when the situation makes it impossible to use a sword?” the general had questioned challengingly.

Ontari ground her teeth together in silent annoyance. It was obvious quickly that the general’s training seemed to consist mostly of snidely comments and barbs and Ontari had never been good at ignoring insults and being taunted. She internally wondered what Marie might find lovable in the harsh Trikru general, but she knew it would be unfair of her to judge Anya based on what she had been faced with so far, she had seen how gentle the woman could be with Marie after all. “I will just snap the other’s neck then” she answered easily with a glower.

Anya raised an eyebrow mockingly, completely unfazed by the nightbloods obviously rising amount of anger “You are aware that not every fight can be fought in close proximity?” she drawled.

Ontari ground her teeth together harder, biting her tongue to reign in the reprimand on the tip of tongue.

“You risk severe injury if you rely on directly facing your opponent” Anya continued in a bored tone, but obviously taking some pity in the clearly railed up girl “You will need to be prepared for each and every possible scenario, so you will master each and every weapon” she proclaimed in a biting tone.

Ontari had to force herself to swallow down the groan wanting to bubble from her throat and she merely inclined her head in silent acknowledgment. She knew already that changing the general’s mind would be impossible, at least for her. She minutely wondered if Marie might be able to at least make the general cut down a bit of her obviously immense expectations. She shook the thought from her mind as quickly as it had formed though, she should feel grateful that the commander seemed to consider her a real candidate to become her successor one day, otherwise she could not explain to herself why the general might have contemplated taking her as her second in the first place.

“I doubt the commander can…” she grumbled under her breath moodily, Ontari had been sure her words had been too low for the general to catch, but it seemed she had been wrong in her assumption.

Quicker than Ontari thought possible, the general had suddenly disarmed her and forced her to her knees with a rather harsh blow to the back of her knees.

The glare on the general’s face had a murderous quality to it and her voice was nothing more than a harsh growl “Oh, you can be absolutely sure that Lexa has mastered all of them. Don’t think even for a second that I will accept anything less from you”.

Ontari gulped visibly and nodded her head, feeling the tip of the general’s sword press against her throat in silent warning. She was aware that she had overstepped a line with her comment.

“We will need to add poise and calmness to the skills you will need to perfect” Anya drawled as she slowly withdrew her swords and offered her hand to the nightblood to hoist her up from the ground.

Ontari’s lips thinned at the added barb but she wisely kept her mouth shut this time. She wondered if Marie would need to meet the same standards tentatively and was surprised at the civility of the general’s answer.

“Marie is not trained as a nightblood novitiate, nor has she ever held any weapons for her first nine summers” Anya answered meaningfully and motioned the nightblood back towards the tower.

Ontari nodded in understanding, she knew it would be impossible to compare her with Marie and vice versa, neither would it be fair. Ontari followed the general in silence back to their now shared quarters. She was startled strongly when the general demanded her to disrobe before taking a bath. Marie had told her previously that the general had inspected every single wound personally after a training session, but Ontari had not expected that the general would extend the same courtesy to her. She found the attention quite exaggerated but at the same time Ontari felt distinctly touched by the gesture. She could not remember being on the receiving of caring hands, if not for the occasional visit of a healer ordered by Nia, if she had been unable to stand up or continue fighting.

Ontari’s surprise increased when the general insisted to call for a healer for an ointment to put on the area she had hit forcefully to bring the girl to her knees. Dark bruises were already forming visibly under the nightbloods skin, Ontari tried to discourage the general, telling the woman that the bruises would fade without assistance. But the glare she received in reaction to her objection, efficiently shut Ontari up again.

Ontari sat in the warm water of the bath, feeling her body relax in effect to the strongly smelling herbs which floated around in the water, but her thoughts were in turmoil. She had not been sure on what to expect from the general from now on, but she had surely not expected this mixture of strict demands and contradicting displays of, if she dared name it, “care”. She would be a fool to even contemplate the idea of the Trikru woman to care for her, for anything more than her usefulness of aiding Marie and she would need to remember that, no matter how tempting it might feel at the moment to have trust in the general. She knew better than to anticipate that anyone beside probably Marie to ever care for her, she had learnt that fact a long time ago.

Her thoughts turned to Marie and Ontari pondered how the blonde girl might be doing and when she would return. They had not packed any supplies or exchange of clothing, so it was probable that Marie would return before dusk with the commander.

As if summoned by her thoughts, Ontari heard the main door to the general’s quarters being opened and Marie barged in loudly. The younger girl’s voice was expressive in its wonder.

“Lexa gifted me with a horse” Marie proclaimed immediately into the room, not even looking first if Anya and Ontari were present or not, she was simply feeling too exited and needed to share the news.

Anya raised a brow inquiringly as she retorted drily “Did she now?”. The general’s eyes had still been focused on the maps in her hands. She internally shook her head at Lexa’s obvious favouritism of their charge, she would need to have a word with Lexa again about spoiling the girl rotten. Abby had been quite insistent on the fact that they should not change their treatment of Marie and that the girl would require them to be strict with her. Handing out gifts to the girl, which were still beyond her position, did not seem like the right way to go to the general.

“Yeah” Marie agreed instantly, completely ignorant of the sarcasm deeply dripping from the general’s tone. “Skairasha foaled…” the girl reported in a chirpy tone and Anya finally looked up, a slight smile forming on her lips at finally hearing the girl being honestly enthusiastic about something again.

The general’s smile froze instantly as she took in her charge’s condition. Dried blood was spattered all over the girl’s front and her brown eyes scanned the girl almost frantically to determine if any of the blood was her own.

“…the stable master said Skairasha would not let anyone near her. But I just went in…” Marie kept on narrating eagerly, eyes still shining.

Anya’s eyes narrowed dangerously at yet another reference of the girl’s seemingly inaptitude to recognize a potentially lethal situation.

Marie must have interpreted Anya’s continued silence and the general standing up to meet her differently and kept on blabbering unfazed “…they could get the foal out, because Skairasha let them inside her box then. Lexa said I will train the foal in the future…”

The girl’s words only stopped when Anya stood directly in front of her and the girl tilted her head slightly in obvious confusion, her own enthusiasm dimming drastically.

“We will see about that” Anya retorted through clenched teeth, as she crouched down in front of the girl. She ignored her charge’s pronounced flinch as she pulled the girl closer to herself, inspecting her cautiously for any wounds.

“What the hell happened to you?” Anya asked in a seething tone. She doubted that much blood could come from attending the birth of a foal.

Realization seemed to dawn on Marie’s face and she shook of the general’s hand and took a step back from the woman, with a slight frown “I am not hurt. We ran into a group of rebels” she claimed airily.

Anya’s brows nearly vanished into her hairline in silent reaction, she tried to control her facial expression more tightly, when she noticed Marie looking almost afraid of her.

“Stay here” Anya brought out through clenched teeth “Ontari is in the bathroom”. Without another word the general stood up and strode from her quarters, the door falling shut behind her forcefully.

Anya barged into the commander’s quarters without waiting for even a moment, anger coursing through her veins. How the hell had Lexa managed to lead their charge into a skirmish with a group of rebels?

Her anger dwindled abruptly, when she took in the carelessly discarded weapons on the floor next to the door, together with dirtied boots and bloodied clothing. Worry bubbled up in her mind, had Lexa been injured?

The door to the balcony stood wide open, wind blowing the curtains inside and Anya spotted the commander’s form against the impending dusk. The younger woman’s shoulders seemed hunched and even without seeing her face, Anya knew Lexa was deeply upset about something.

Anya hesitated within the opened door for a moment and Lexa must have felt eyes watching her. The vulnerability within her previous second’s green eyes so clearly visibly twisted something within Anya almost painfully and her anger vanished completely. The general stepped outside onto the balcony and joined the commander mutely, her brows creased slightly in internal worry.

Lexa was standing on the balcony only clad in her underwear and chest wrap. At least Anya could quickly let her eyes scan over the commander’s body and fortunately did not encounter any bleeding wounds.

“What is troubling you like that, yongon?” Anya asked, surprising both of them slightly by using Lexa’s older nick name. She rarely had made usage of it after Lexa had taken the mantle of the commander.

Lexa sighed deeply, shoulders sagging more pronouncedly and an encompassing sadness seemed to linger within the depth of her green eyes. “I have just realized something…” was Lexa’s only answer.

Anya’s brows furrowed “I fear I need you to elaborate there” she prompted, when Lexa remained silent for a few minutes and only looked out over the city with what Anya would interpret as melancholia written over her features, the general added “It can’t have anything to do with our charge. The girl was all chirpy smiles and blabbering about the foal you gifted her with”.

A slight smile tilted the commander’s lips upwards for the fraction of a second, before her features sobered completely, her voice was heavy when she finally answered. “Marie is surely your charge now”.

Anya’s frown deepened “She has been before, just as she is yours…I do not understand, Lexa”.

Lexa turned her back to the city beneath them, leaning against the railing of her balcony as she stared back at her previous mentor. Her tone was tinted with bitterness as she elaborated “Marie solely connected with me in the first place because the girl believed you dead and simply had no one else…”

Anya let out a snort as reaction, shaking her head disbelievingly at the seeming absurdity of the idea which already apparently had taken root within the commander’s mind. “So, you think she will not re-connect with you now?” she checked, voice coloured with doubt strongly.

“Why should she?” Lexa shot back, voice almost angry now.

Anya pinched the bridge of her nose in silent annoyance, it was hard for her to wrap her mind about the fact that Lexa clearly believed in her own assumption. “You know very well that the girl loves you in your own right” the general reasoned exasperated. She mentally shook her head, how often had she felt slightly envious of Marie choosing the comfort of Lexa’s arms instead of her own, when she had reprimanded the girl for something.

“That might have been the case, but she does not remember” Lexa retorted, exhaustion suddenly clear on her features. She was tired of waiting for Marie to remember, hoping after every slight smile of the child that their charge finally remembered and feeling that hope being crushed over and over again, when Marie’s expression closed off again or the child flinched away from her hands.

Anya sighed “But she will. She is regaining memories daily. She remembered that there was a connection to you already, Marie simply does not understand its depths yet.” She had heard Marie telling Ontari that more and more memories were coming back to her mind, but that she was having trouble understanding them and the turmoil of feelings associated with them seemed to overwhelm the child’s mind.

Lexa slightly shook her head and opened her mouth to say something, but seemed to think better of it. They stood in silence for a moment, before the commander admitted, voice barely above a whisper “I miss her…”

Anya’s brown eyes reflected the sadness portrayed in the commander’s statement and she nodded in agreement “Don’t you think I feel the same?” she questioned. Although they had rarely been this open with each other’s feelings, the general was aware that they needed to share the burden now.

Lexa huffed under her breath and doubt was clear on her features “She seems much closer to you already” she commented voice judging.

Anya’s lips thinned slightly “I have spent more time with her already. You need to give her time and patience. What happened to “It takes as long as it takes”?”

Lexa snorted at having her own words thrown back into her face, but she took a deep breath and nodded. She was not sure why the situation was riling her up so strongly, rationally nothing had happened during their outing which would justify her extreme reaction.

“Stop overthinking every second, Lexa” Anya chided the commander in a gentle tone, feeling herself thrown back several years into the past.

The flash of recognition passing through the commander’s green eyes showed clearly that Lexa felt the same déjà vu and the tension between them dissipated.

“But, gifting her with a foal, really?” Anya asked with a teasing glint to her brown eyes.

Lexa huffed, crossing her arms over her chest in an uncharacteristic gesture. She had known already that her previous mentor would tease her about her impulsive decision. “She will need her own horse one day” she reasoned lamely, although she knew the argument was lacking, it would be years before the foal was old enough to be ridden.

“Of course,” Anya inclined her head in mock understanding “and gifting a breed from the commander’s stables is such a normal occurrence” she added.

Lexa’s lips thinned visibly and she bit her lips, not wanting to rise to the obvious barb of her previous mentor. “How did it go with Ontari?” she asked, changing the topic nonchalantly.

Anya slightly shook her head at the obvious distraction, but she answered lightly “As well as it could have. She does not trust me, that much is obvious. But I would not expect her to”.

Lexa looked at her mentor questioningly waiting for the general to elaborate. She had agreed to Ontari moving in with the general on the condition that the woman would mentor the Ice Nation nightblood, but Anya had already entertained the idea on her own.

“She is distant and cautious. She seems to think it might be some elaborate trap to get rid of her” Anya voiced her assumption; the girl had not told her that of course.

Lexa nodded in silent understanding and she had not expected differently. Ontari seemed to only be truly trusting of Marie, she was under no illusion to think that the Ice Nation nightblood held any regard for herself.

“She will need to be trained in wide rage fighting, her skills are surprisingly lacking there” Anya continued.

“With other words, she is decent enough to protect herself, but not to your standards” Lexa put in, fond amusement evident on her features. She still remembered how the general had nearly driven her insane with her nearly impossible to meet expectations.

Anya narrowed her eyes at her former second and her lips thinned.

Lexa held up her hands in a soothing gesture, her lips curling into a smile and she was obviously fighting laughter wanting to bubble from her throat.

Anya shook her head in silent disbelief at the commander’s antics and turned from the balcony.

Lexa followed the general inside, her features sobered again “I had not anticipated to meet rebels” the commander said.

Anya nodded her head; her anger had already died down and she knew it would not be fair to place blame with Lexa for the possibility of such an encounter.

The door opening again and Clarke stepping inside was the sign for Anya to leave the commander’s quarters for the night, the general inclined her head to the blonde healer in silent acknowledgment.

 

Marie had watched the general leave blinking her eyes in confusion, not understanding why the woman had stormed away so suddenly and quite obviously angry.

She stepped inside the bathroom without knocking.

Ontari whirled around to the girl a reprimand on the tip of her tongue, but it died on her tongue when she took in Marie’s appearance, at least she understood the general’s reaction now. She had stepped out of the bath once she had recognized Marie’s exited voice and she slung the towel firmly around her body, ushering the girl to the bath.

“The water is still warm enough” she said, nudging the younger girl forward.

“What?!” Marie retorted confusion turning into slight anger “I can’t look that bad!”

Ontari’s lips thinned at the girl’s outburst “There is no need for you to shout. You are splattered in blood”.

Marie’s anger seemed to diminish immediately at the slight chastisement and she looked at herself in the mirror standing in the corner of her bathroom. A frown settled on her face, she had not realized she had been bloodied this badly.

“Just clean yourself up” Ontari directing, nudging the girl to the bathroom gently. To her slight surprise Marie started disrobing in her company without hesitation.

The girl’s grey eyes showed that something was troubling her and Marie started to tell Ontari in a tentative tone what she had remembered during the encounter with the rebels.

It was obvious the girl had trouble wrapping her mind about the fact that she had felt the need in the past to defend the general with her own life and had instinctively done the same for the commander.

“So, I truly care deeply for both of them?” Marie mused, sitting in the bath now, while Ontari had sat down on a chair and was listening to the younger girl’s narration.

Ontari nodded in agreement immediately. It did not fail her notice that Marie still evaded the usage of the word “love” although it had seemed natural to the younger girl before. “You love them” Ontari assured Marie with a slight smile and once she saw doubt rising on the younger girl’s face, she added honestly “You told me so yourself”.

Marie’s fingers suddenly tightened around the bathing tube forcefully and her voice was tinted strongly with frustration with herself “I want to remember…”

“You will” Ontari tried to reassure the younger girl and gently loosened her iron grip on the bathing tube. She did not know if the edges would be sharp and she did not wish for her to injure herself.

 

 

Chapter 174

Anya stopped in her tracks when she returned to her quarters. The door the bathroom was not closed and the girls’ voices carried the slight distance easily. The insight just how hard it was for Marie to understand that she truly had loved her and Lexa, felt like a dagger being twisted within her heart. She wished with her whole being that Marie would truly soon remember everything again. She could fathom easily enough why Lexa was having such problems reconciling this version of Marie with the sweet child they had both fallen in love with.

But she also knew that Marie kept herself even more guarded in the commander’s presence than she did with her. She had overheard enough conversation between Ontari and Marie to know just how much the girl’s view of the commander had already changed, but what the queen had instilled in the child’s mind would not be simply whipped away. Anya dearly hoped that Marie regaining her complete remembrance would make her disregard Nia’s words completely.

She closed the door behind herself with an audible click, loud enough for the girls to realize she had returned. She stepped over into the bathroom and smiled slightly when she realized that Marie was now taking a bath.

Ontari seemed obviously uncomfortable by her company and gripped the towel more tightly around her body, but Anya paid her no mind. The general was convinced that the nightblood would get used to her over time soon enough.

Marie looked unsure for a moment and her voice was small when she asked “Are you angry with me?”

Anya took a deep breath, remembering all those times clearly the girl had already asked her the very same question before losing her memory and the question seemed so out of character for the hardened girl now, that she simply shook her head in the negative with an honest expression on her features.

Marie nodded, but her slight frown seemed to deepen further and her voice sounded whiny “When will I remember everything?”

Anya felt as if shrugging as an answer was the only thing she could come up with, but caught herself before she could do so. She was still trying to knock this habit out of Marie, showing it herself now, would make her efforts null surely. “I honestly do not know, Marie” she retorted, trying hard to keep a straight face. It was obvious the girl was stressing herself about the question enough, without her adding to it.

When Marie pouted and angry tears seemed to glisten within her eyes, Anya stepped closer to the bathing tube and crouched down in front of it, bringing herself onto Marie’s level and gazing into her troubled eyes determinedly. Her voice was strong as she said “Do not stress yourself like that, Marie. Abby said it would not help and only slow your mind. You need to give your mind time to remember. Let the memories come back to you naturally”.

Marie huffed, a doubtful look on her features. In her mind there was nothing natural about the whole situation, so the advice seemed rather useless. She wished there would be something she could do, which would just bring back her memories.

“You already remember a lot now, considering the short time you have been back in Polis” Anya tried to reassure the child.

Marie nodded although the reluctance was clear on her features.

“Get out of the water soon” Anya ordered, as she had tested the temperature with her fingers. The water would be too cold soon and dinner would be served as well, she did not wish the girl to catch a cold on top of all of it. With that she left the two girls alone in the bathroom again.

She could still hear the girls conversing with each other though.

“What have you done today?” Marie asked Ontari as soon as the general was out of sight. She knew that Abby had said she should not dwell on her missing memories, so she tried to divert her attention from them and she was genuinely curious as well.

“Training” Ontari answered in a clipped tone.

Marie frowned at the older girl, head slightly tilted to the side in confusion.

Ontari sighed when she spotted the girl’s reaction “I have been training the complete day with the general” she elaborated.

Marie’s frown deepened slightly, she had expected the nightblood to have trained with Anya, so the elaboration was not helpful at all. She would have probably preferred to train with Anya in Ontari’s stead.

“Don’t you like Anya?” Marie asked inquiringly wondering where Ontari’s mood swing had come from.

The honest naivety in the younger girl’s question startled Ontari quite strongly and her brows knitted together in contemplation. It would not have even crossed her mind to ponder such a question. She judged that Marie must have regained a rather huge part of her connection to Anya to ask something like that, she doubted the girl would have asked something similar while still within Nia’s company.

Ontari contemplated for long moments on how to answer the younger girl’s question.

Marie obviously was not expecting an answer any longer and climbed out of the bathing tube with a frown on her face, confused why Ontari was not answering her question.

Ontari had taken the time to come up with an answer to dress herself. “The general is supposed to be my mentor, I do not have to “like” her, Marie” her confusion of the idea of doing so clear in her tone.

Marie scrutinized the older girl in silent question. She did not understand why the nightblood would not wish to develop a bond to the general, now that she was her first as well. Another memory flashed up in her mind and she gasped under her breath, closing her eyes against the onslaught of impressions.

Ontari watched the younger girl’s reaction with worry and she stepped slightly closer to Marie, worried that Marie might be losing consciousness or something.

Marie did not meet her eyes, when she opened them again a few tense moments later. The girl tilted her head to the side slightly as she said “Anya has told me that the bond between a first and second is considered familial”. To her the reasoning was sound proof after all. She stopped in her thought and blinked in confusion, once she caught up with her thoughts and more memories linked to the memory of Anya and Lexa explaining to her that she could braid their hair because of the bond they shared came back to her. She remembered discussing with Anya that she loved the general and the commander. She remembered the confusion of seemingly not being allowed to give voice to her feelings. But the true feeling of love still somehow evaded her mind. Marie was sure she would not have said that she loved them, if she had not felt it. The frustration within herself mounted again, why could the memories not simply come back?

Ontari’s answer pulled the girl from her thoughts once again “I guess, we will have to form a bond first for that” her answer sounded reluctant and laden heavily with doubt that something like that ever would ever come to pass.

On the other side of the door Anya wondered internally what specifically Marie was remembering. They had spoken about the nature of their bond several times and it was hard for her to pinpoint the exact moment. She felt slight compassion for the Ice Nation nightblood grow within her mind, it was obvious just how distrustful the girl was of the world around her. While Marie had severely lacked distrust previously and had been trusting of everyone almost instantly, Ontari seemed to be the complete opposite. Anya was grateful the nightblood had not succeeded in her plans to assassinate Lexa and her novitiates, without a change of mind Ontari would have made a terrible commander. She was still unsure if the girl could ever be a good successor to Lexa’s destiny, but it was hard to predict how she would develop.

A handmaid arrived a few moments later, bringing in dinner for all of them and Anya dismissed her quickly again. Risha had been on the heels of the woman, obviously having been in the kitchens to be fed and the wolf immediately searched the quarters for her human.

Marie smiled brightly at the wolf, when Risha nosed open the door to the bathroom and wagged her tail at the girl.

Ontari looked doubtfully at the wolf, keeping an obvious distance to the animal.

Anya watched the Ice Nation nightblood’s reaction with a hidden smirk, it was painfully obvious that Ontari was afraid of Risha, but too proud to say so.

Marie had kneeled down in front of Risha and the wolf enthusiastically licked all over face in greeting.

The expression of disgust blooming on Ontari’s face openly was shared by the general and the woman loudly cleared her throat, ordering the girls to come out and eat dinner.

“She has gotten so big” Marie remarked in, voice slightly confused again. She still could mostly only remember Risha as a tiny cub and the growth of her wolf just emphasised how much time was missing from her memory. The fact that she was not even pondering what she was missing of her life before falling to earth, beside wondering about her parents, did not went unnoticed by Anya. Marie had apparently asked Abby after her parents and the girl’s attention had left the parents she could not remember, when she was told that they had both died long before the Ark had fallen to the ground.

“She will not grow much more” Anya agreed. In the girl’s absence the wolf had grown out of being a cub, she had been gone for months after all.

When Marie slid into her seat and almost immediately started feeding scraps to Risha, Anya’s lips thinned visibly, while Ontari did mostly look disgusted at the fact that Marie would feed something to the wolf with the same hand she would then eat something herself.

“Marie!” Anya almost growled at the girl in warning. In the absence of their charge Lexa had taken over the primary care of Risha and the wolf had developed well and was well enough behaved now, she would definitely not sit back and let Marie spoil all of the commander’s efforts.

Marie looked up startled for a moment, until Risha suddenly nudged her thigh with one of her paws and laid her muzzle onto her thigh, obviously waiting to be fed more. A slight blush creeped up her cheeks, when she remembered Anya chiding her for exactly that behaviour before and she had already remembered previously that the general had been against letting her keep the wolf in the first place. “Sorry” she mumbled and continued eating in silence, now without giving anything to Risha.

Anya shook her head, sighing under her breath at the girl’s antics and lightly glared at the wolf, looking at her innocently, as if the creature knew it had been the subject of her chastisement.

Ontari watched the exchange with a frown, absolutely sure that she was missing something. How could Marie know what the general wanted without any explanation?

When the wolf turned her eyes to Ontari and came closer to the nightblood, sniffing at the stranger, Ontari visibly stiffened in her chair, fighting the urge to jump up and bring some more distance between her and the wolf’s teeth. She had had a few encounters with wolves before and she remembered that they were not particular friendly creatures. Why anyone would even try to attempt and keep one as a pet, completely evaded every sense of rationality in her mind.

Marie frowned the older girl’s reaction in confusion, she knew without the sliver of a doubt that Risha would not hurt anyone, so she did not understand why Ontari appeared so unnerved by Risha’s proximity.

“She won’t bite you” Marie took a guess at the origin at the other girl’s obvious uneasiness.

Ontari glowered at the younger girl in reaction and snapped “You don’t know that” nearly falling from her chair now, trying in vain to get away from the wolf, who seemed insistent in its approach.

Anya had to try hard to suppress a smirk from forming in her features at the nightblood’s antics, she would have never guessed that the girl would show to a fear so openly.

The girl’s weird reaction seemed to only increase Risha’s interest though and when the wolf was finally in touching distance and sniffed at Ontari’s leg, the girl suddenly jumped from her chair with an indignant almost squeal “Call it back!” she demanded loudly into Marie’s direction and her voice had a pleading quality when she looked at the wolf “Don’t bite me….”

Now, Anya was powerless to stop the bark of laughter escaping her lips. Ontari glared strongly at the general in reaction, while Marie seemed even more confused.

When the younger girl motioned to Risha, the wolf immediately trotted over to her and plopped down beside the girl obediently. Marie let her fingers run through the wolf’s fur a few times soothingly. Risha’s ice blue eyes were focused on the nightblood and if possible, the wolf seemed confused as well.

Ontari sat back down, a crimson blush on her cheeks in obvious shame, still glaring at the general lightly for laughing at her. The girl had her arms crossed firmly over her chest.

Anya snorted under her breath. With all the attitude Ontari usually carried herself with, she had never expected to ever bear witness to such a childish display from the nightblood. “You have met wolves before?” the general enquired with the nightblood girl.

Ontari nodded with a sullen expression and her tone was biting “Vicious creatures…” she commented, turning her glare to Risha now.

“This one is definitely not one of those” Anya assured the girl strongly. She would not advise anyone on trying to hurt Marie or Lexa, Risha had already shown that she was protective of the commander during Marie’s absence and it was only logical to assume Risha would act the same with Marie.

Ontari looked dubious at best and she grumbled “They are bloodthirsty monsters…”

Marie huffed, obviously insulted on Risha’s behalf. “Did you meet every single wolf out there?” the girl asked in a challenging tone.

Ontari narrowed her eyes at the younger girl, already guessing where her logic was going “Well, no, but…”

Marie interrupted her before she could finish her argument “See, Risha is a nice one. You were also convinced all Trikru were evil.”

Ontari seemed to glower at the girl in exasperation, clearly uncomfortable that Anya was in the room now and had heard that. But her retort had died on her tongue and she grumblingly turned her attention back to her own dinner.

Marie watched the nightblood for a few more moments before Anya nudged her to resume eating as well.

Anya continued watching both of the girls during the rest of their silent dinner. Marie seemed to quickly loose interest in waiting for Ontari to say something else and focused on Risha instead, although she did not feed the wolf anything anymore, the wolf obviously still enjoyed being petted by her greatly. Ontari was meanwhile glowering moodily into the rest of her food.

Anya sighed under her breath. She would have liked it better to have a serious conversation with the nightblood on their own, but if she truly wished to train both girls alongside each other, they would all need to get used to the idea of sharing every aspect of their lives with each other.

“It does not matter what you thought or might still think about Trikru” Anya addressed the nightblood girl in a calm tone.

Ontari’s dark eyes snapped up from her plate and looked deeply startled by the general’s assurance. She remained mute though and when Anya sighed under her breath, Ontari finally said, relatively low “I don’t think that of all of Trikru any longer…”

The way the girl had formulated her answer, made it perfectly clear that she still did not hold Trikru in any kind of high regard, but Anya would not have expected that anyway.

The general in silent acknowledgment “No one expects you to forget your origin overnight, Ontari” she added after a moment.

Ontari seemed to contemplate her words for a few moments.

“Nia has poisoned your mind against every clan besides Azgeda just like Marie’s mind, only for a far longer time” Anya remarked into the silence.

Ontari nodded with a thoughtful expression. Her opinions had changed a lot already since she first had set foot into Polis, but she still caught herself thinking within the ways the queen had instilled into her, it was hard to develop her own mind like that.

A handmaid coming to collect their dishes dissipated the tension within the room instantly. Ontari still looked contemplative, the general had given her enough to think about for one day.

Marie’s mood plummeted drastically when Anya proclaimed that Risha would not be allowed to stay within her quarters as long as Ontari was obviously not comfortable in the wolf’s presence.

Ontari was torn between assuring the general that she did not have a problem with the wolf staying, as long as it stayed within Marie’s bed, and vocalizing a thanks to the general for considering her wellbeing like this at all. She felt slightly guilty when she noticed just how upset was when Anya brought the wolf over to the commander’s quarters. But the relive outweighed that. Although unrealistic, who would have assured her that the wolf would not decide her to attack her during the night?

Marie sat on her bed, arms crossed over her chest, clearly sulking still, when Anya returned several moments later, while Ontari sat on her own bed, looking at the younger girl uncertainly. The nightblood had not known what to say to Marie to try to console her, so she had not said anything at all.

Ontari swallowed forcefully, she would try to make an effort with the wolf soon. Maybe if she got to know the animal slightly, she would be sure it would not attack her.

 

 

Chapter 175

Marie’s mood seemed to sour even more when Anya proclaimed that it was time to go to bed now. Panic flashed through her grey eyes minutely, but the girl hid it quickly and forced a smile on her face.

“Can I visit Skairasha and her foal now?” Marie asked Anya quickly sounding eager again.

Anya furrowed her brow and shook her head in the negative “No, you can visit them tomorrow” she assured the girl.

“You said, I could go to the stables whenever I wanted, if I told you before” Marie talked back, accusation clear in her tone.

Anya’s lips thinned at having her offer being thrown back in her face like that. “Certainly not when I just told you to go to sleep only mere moments before”.

“But can’t I….?” Marie began to ask again.

Anya interrupted her before she could finish her question “No, Marie!” she said, tone strict and unyielding “You will sleep now!”

“Can I…?” Marie started to ask something else now, seemingly unfazed by the general’s mounting annoyance and waning patience.

“No!” Anya interrupted the girl sharply, her brown eyes angry now and when the girl made to open her mouth again, she threatened “Don’t make me repeat myself a fourth time, Marie…”

Marie seemed to be immune to the general’s tone now and her own features were twisted in anger now and the girl did not let herself be interrupted by the general now. “You are mean!” the girl almost shouted at the general, glaring at the woman.

Anya seemed to take a deep breath, trying to calm her mounting anger and her voice was forced through clenched teeth “That’s it! You are going to bed, RIGHT NOW!” She knew that the girl was testing her limits, but she would not concede now.

Marie pursed her lips sulkily, but she turned around with a huff, when Anya only glared at her totally unfazed.

The general watched Marie slide under her furs with mixed feelings, she was barely holding on to her patience now. “You can still read something, Ontari” she addressed the Ice Nation nightblood in a clipped tone, her own mood soured for the time being.

Ontari looked deeply uncomfortable being witness to the argument and she immediately shook her head, opting not to anger the general even further for the better option, and got into her own bed in silence. She frowned slightly when she turned into Marie’s direction and noticed the younger girl glaring forcefully at a point on the wall. She could not see the younger girl any longer, when the general went around the room and extinguished most of the candles, casting the room into almost complete darkness.

Marie waited until she hoped Anya would have fallen asleep, she had heard Ontari’s breathing evening out a long time ago, and tiptoed into the bathroom carefully.

She had seen the general storing the vial with the sleeping aid in a drawer there. With a loudly hammering heart Marie searched the bathroom and fortunately found the vial where she had expected it to be. She shortly contemplated taking the whole thing, but Anya might miss its absence. Marie looked around the bathroom searching for a glass or a cup, but she could not find anything. There was the huge bowl filled with clean water for washing, but she could only gather some with her hands. Thinking for a moment, Marie decided to simply drop two drops of the liquid directly onto her tongue and drinking some water afterwards.

Counting two drops that way proved impossible and Marie had absolutely no clue on how much of the liquid she might have consumed, but she drank a little water afterwards to try to get rid of the bitter taste on her tongue.

She still felt her heart beating strongly, once she stored the vial back into the drawer cautiously and tiptoed back into the room, slipping beneath her furs. She knew, that she should have better asked Anya for some of the sleeping aid, but the general had seemed so angry that Marie had doubted she would have agreed to give her some. Sleepiness overtook her body quickly, once she had gotten back into bed and just like promised she slipped into a totally dreamless slumber.

In the morning Anya was surprised to find Marie asleep still and she had needed to shake the girl’s shoulder a few times to rouse her. She worried slightly over the change, but she chalked it off to the girl simply having been completely exhausted, when Marie woke up with a soft smile and enthusiastically greeted her.

The day passed mostly with training. Lexa had been busy with organizing a unit to inquire about the rebels who seemed to form a camp too near to Polis to her liking.

Anya had designed an assault course for Marie and Ontari which the two girls could only complete if they truly worked with each other. Both of them had been taught by the royal guard to only rely on their own skills and working with someone and efficiently entrusting another person with their lives was a visible challenge for both of her charges. Marie seemed to do slightly better than Ontari, but it took them far longer to complete the course than Anya had anticipated.

Marie and Ontari were left to their own devices for the time left until dinner and the younger girl immediately insisted that they would visit the stables.

It was clear quickly to Ontari just how enamoured the younger girl was with the foal. She did not quite understand its appeal though. The foal was still unsteady on its legs and she knew that it would need to grow for several years before it could be taught to accept a rider on its back. She had to admit that the commander’s warhorses were all rather impressing mounts and the foal would consequently grow to become one on its own right with time. Marie seemed to find the small animal “cute” or at the least the girl commented each and every slight movement of the foal that way.

Marie was unfazed by the lack of enthusiasm from Ontari’s side though and the girl kept on chirping about the foal non-stop. In all honesty, the girl’s enthusiasm was starting to grant on Ontari’s nerves, but she tried to nod every now and then in acknowledgment, which seemed to placate Marie well enough.

Gustus had accompanied the two girls, not being on guard duty at the moment and it was refreshing for him to spot Marie’s true personality shining through her cool demeanour now. As soon as the girls stepped out of the stables, Marie’s face became blank again, but her grey eyes still shone visibly with pure joy.

In the evening Marie now officially asked Anya for some of the sleeping aid, not wanting to sneak around the general, she was sure the woman would be angry if she found out she had taken some without permission.

But to her silent horror the general denied her. Before her departure Abby had spoken with Marie once again and afterwards with Anya. The girl had told Abby how much she already remembered and she had claimed not to suffer from any nightmares at all. As soon as the conversation had turned even remotely into the direction of the Ice queen, Marie had closed off completely and not said another single word. So, Abby had adamantly told the general that giving the girl a sleeping aid to suppress her dreams, was not advisable. The child’s mind needed the time in her dreams to work through the memories she was starting to regain.

Marie had at first tried sleeping without the tonic this night, but she had woken drenched in a cold sweat and had tiptoed into the bathroom without much hesitation and repeated the procedure from the previous night. She forgot what her nightmare had consisted off under the effects of the tonic and woke up rested and refreshed once again in the morning.

Anya was eternally relived to see that Marie seemed to be able to sleep without any aid and the nightmares had apparently let off already. She was slightly suspicious of the seemingly too easy change, but she hoped the girl had simply started to feel safe again.

The next day was filled with training again. In the afternoon both of the girl accompanied Lexa to a lesson with the other novitiates and Marie was re-introduced to the children officially. She had known a few of their names, before Lexa had spoken them and the children all seemed happy to hear that she made progress. She had been introduced to Titus and Rana, but no memories came back to her concerning the two adults.

Afraid of facing yet another nightmare, Marie waited impatiently for Anya to fall asleep before she sneaked into the bathroom again and took the tonic once more. She forcefully shoved the slight flash of guilt at efficiently lying to the general from her mind, relived to be able to sleep without disturbances.

The procedure repeated itself for several days in succession without either Ontari or Anya noticing anything aloof.

Anya’s worry for her younger charge returned when it became increasingly difficult to rouse the girl in the morning and Marie’s mood seemed sourer than ever. She was taken aback slightly by the girl snapping at her rudely before storming off into the bathroom without another word.

Marie was meanwhile not feeling well at all anymore, she had started to feel sick after taking the tonic for five days in a row. She had honestly tried to not take it for a night afterwards, but she had been so afraid that she had simply continued to take it. Now that it was ten days of taking the tonic without a stop, Marie was feeling miserable. Her body had started to revolt against food and two days ago it had seemed as if she started to hallucinate. She had been walking with Gustus from the stables back to the tower, the guard seemed to spend time there as much as she did, and suddenly it had seemed as if Nia suddenly stood in front of her. Marie had no idea how she had managed to convince the burly guard that nothing had happened and she was alright.

Marie gritted her teeth. She was more frustrated with herself than ever. No further memories had come to herself in the last days. The few times she and Ontari had been supposed to spend time within the commander’s quarters and in Lexa’s company had been tense at best. On a positive note, Risha had always been there, so that Marie had been able to keep her attention on the wolf. Ontari was still not comfortable in the wolf’s company and Marie had stopped hoping that would change anytime soon. At the beginning Marie had even slightly enjoyed the time spend with Lexa, the woman had clearly made an effort. When Lexa started to read a story to both of them, Ontari had still seemed alienated by the concept, the shadow of a memory surfaced within Marie’s mind, but as she had tried to concentrate on it, it vanished and slipped further away. Lexa had watched the girl from afar for the past days, it was obvious the girl loved the time she spent at the stables daily now, but it did not seem as if she made any progress to get closer to the child once again.

Lexa counted it as a huge progress when Marie seemed to finally be comfortable enough to sit down directly next to her and lean over to look into the book she held as well. The commander was startled strongly, when the girl suddenly jumped up and excused herself into the bathroom, only to return deathly pale and sitting down in front of the fire with Risha, staying entirely silent for the rest of their time together, no matter how gently or vehemently she tried to pry for what had upset the girl.

The day trudged on awfully slowly and Marie’s concentration was slipping. She was caught of guard by seeing Nia appear in front of her eyes time and time again. Marie suffered from a rather deep gash on her arm during training, when she suddenly let her guard drop when Anya’s face suddenly morphed into the queen’s features. The general had angrily sent her to the healer, concerned by the girl’s apparent lack of attention.

Marie managed to get through the day somehow and waited with a baited breath for the general to fall asleep again. When she was convinced the woman had drifted off, she shakily stood from her bed and sneaked into the bathroom.

Anya had become suspicious of the girl’s behaviour and felt the changes in the girl weigh heavily within her mind. The girl had seemingly improved a lot over the span of only a few days and now she was only speaking in a clipped tone, being extremely jumpy and staring at nothing for prolonged times. The smiles she had watched grow on the girl’s face, were absent once again and her grey eyes seemed dulled and haunted.

The general startled awake when she heard a sound coming from the bathroom. She furrowed her brow, when a quick glance to Marie’s bed showed it to be empty. She stood from the bed to check with her charge if she was sick.

Marie jumped slightly when she heard Anya approach the bathroom, hurriedly she took some of the sleeping aid and shoved the vial back into the drawer and pretended to have just used the toilet. She had no idea how much of the tonic she had just taken, she had been in such a hurry to hide the vial again that she had been careless with it.

“Are you feeling well?” Anya asked worriedly in a hushed tone, Ontari seemed to be in a deep sleep already.

Marie nodded mutely, not being able to actually meet the woman’s worried gaze, and quickly stepped around the woman, slipping beneath her furs without any more words.

Anya watched the girl with a mute frown, something was off with the girl clearly, but she could not pinpoint what. She hoped that the child was not coming down with something.

In the morning Anya’s worry mounted ten-fold. Marie was not woken by her touch and the girl’s skin was warm to the touch and she seemed drenched in sweat.

Anya stepped out of the room quickly, sending one of the guards to immediately summon a healer. She sighed under her breath, not looking forward at all to taking care of a sick child yet again. She hoped it was nothing serious though and that the girl had simply caught a cold.

Ontari looked on in worry how an older woman came rushing into their quarters followed closely by Wanheda herself.

Clarke had not seen much of Marie in the last few days. She had been occupied most of her time with helping out the healers around Polis and had mostly returned to the commander’s quarters after Marie and Ontari had already left the room.

The condition of the girl was alarming to say the least, her complexion was waxen and it seemed as if she had lost weight. Her pupils did not react to light and looked unusually small. Although the girl’s body showed a slightly elated temperature, it was not a fever yet and the child’s lymph nodes were not swollen. It did not look like her symptoms matched to a cold or an infection, but Clarke had no idea what it could have been besides that. That the girl would not wake up was the most alarming in her opinion.

Laurel on the other hand seemed to have a suspicion immediately. “How often has she been given the tonic I provided you with?” the lead healer asked the general after hearing the child’s symptoms.

Anya’s brows furrowed “I have not given her anything of it at all” she proclaimed. When asked to collect the vial, Anya’s frown deepened, but the general returned with the vial in hand. She looked at the girl in silent horror, having paled considerably. The vial was almost empty. The only logical consequence was that Marie had taken the tonic without her knowledge.

Laurel nodded “She has poisoned herself with overdosing the tonic” she commented with a sigh.

“Is that life threatening?” the general asked trying to keep her tone calm, but feeling anything but. How had the girl sneaked around her for days and she had not recognized anything? Guilt started to gnaw at her insides, she should have noticed earlier that something was off.

Laurel shook her head as she prepared a paste for the child, mixing it into a cup of water “No, but the next hours and days are not going to be pleasant for her. I cannot say for how long she has been taking it, but she might have already developed an addiction” she explained.

When the healer explained to Anya what needed to be done now and what was expected during the next hours, she asked the nightblood to seek out Titus. Ontari did not have to keep the girl vigil as well and the girl could participate in the normal training of the nightbloods instead.

Clarke assisted Laurel in forcing the dark liquid down the unconscious girl’s throat, it should prompt her to start vomiting soon, hopefully removing at least some of the substance from her system. She assured the other healer that she would stay with the girl and the general at least until the child woke up.

It was obvious to the blonde without Anya to having to voice it, that she already blamed herself for not detecting anything.

Laurel had been correct in her prediction of how hard the next hours turned out to be. Marie was caught in a dazed state between deliriousness and awareness. The vomiting continued through hours without end. Anya was wondering already just how much the girl could have left in her body to vomit.

The child seemed to switch minutely between wanting to be comforted calling out in a pitiful voice to Anya and sometimes Lexa and shrinking into herself, flinching away from her touch again.

The hours felt like slow torture to Anya and when recognition seemed to finally appear in Marie’s grey eyes, the child started to cry in earnest.

Clarke had stayed until the end, waiting for the girl’s answer on just how long she had taken the tonic.

Marie had brought out the answer through loud sobbing and Anya frowned deeply when Marie reasoned that she had been sure she would not be given the tonic because the general had been angry with her.

Clarke sighed, Laurel had explained her that the time span would already have been enough for the girl to develop a mild addiction, but it seemed as if she had only truly overdosed herself in the last night.

The girl kept on apologizing rapidly to Anya, while Clarke slipped away. Lexa had already sent a guard wanting to be briefed on how the child was doing.

Anya knew that speaking rationally with the girl now, would make no sense at all, so she only held her hand and tried to sooth the upset child. The girl seemed physically drained, when her vomiting turned into dry heaves, but her tears did not seem to dry out.

“You will feel better soon…” Anya promised for what felt like the thousand’s times.

When Marie tried to yet again apologize tearfully, Anya gently silenced the girl “Ssshh, Marie. It is alright now. You cannot change it anymore now, so just stop apologizing.”

 

Chapter 176

When Marie truly woke the next time, it was already dark. She blinked her eyes open in confusion, when she felt someone hold her hand. A groan left her mouth against her will and she carefully inched into a sitting position. Her body felt weirdly exhausted, her throat raw and her eyes felt swollen.

Anya was holding onto her hand, but it seemed that the general was still asleep. Ontari’s bed proved to be empty and Marie wondered where the other girl was.

She also tried to remember what time it was and what had actually happened. Her breath caught in her throat, when she spotted the vial of the sleeping aid lying on the table next to her bed.

Before Marie had the possibility to think about how to justify to her mentor that she had sneaked around her and taken the tonic without the woman’s knowledge for days, a fact which already made guilt gnaw at her insides because she had known that she was doing something else, a huge onslaught of impressions resurfacing within her mind, made her gasp.

She suddenly remembered Anya’s quarters again and being confided into them for weeks on end, because she had not been able to walk. She remembered missing Lexa, as the woman had not shown herself.

Marie had her eyes tightly closed as she abruptly recalled why her own thoughts had felt so upsetting during the outing with Lexa. Suddenly images of the Mountain flashed through her mind, being dragged away at the commander’s orders and hearing later that Anya had returned to her.

All of a sudden, the tonic did not seem to feel so pressing to her anymore. She felt as if she finally remembered the closeness she had felt for her mentor. Marie guessed that she was still missing much, but with an increasing heartbeat she felt the pressing urge to just be enveloped into Anya’s strong arms, where she knew she was safe.

It looked as if dawn was impending and the first signs of soft light filtered through the curtains into their quarters.

Marie could not stop the sob bubbling from her throat, but she still registered just how uncomfortable Anya’s position had appeared to be, half sitting and asleep on a chair next to her bedside.

Anya was woken by Marie audibly sobbing and she already felt the girl’s smaller hand shaking slightly, where she still had held onto it during the long hours of the night. She cracked her eyes open quickly, already painfully aware of the lingering tension in her back from sitting upright so long.

“You came back…” Marie brought out between heavy sobs wreaking her frame and her grey eyes looked to be overflowing with a variety of emotions.

Anya was slightly confused by the girl’s statement and worried that the tonic had still not left the child’s system. Laurel had said that hallucinations could be expected as an adverse reaction. “I did not leave your side” she soothed the obviously upset girl and squeezed her fingers gently. During the last hours Marie had switched between desperately wanting at least some closeness and later freaking out about the same closeness.

Marie shook her head “I remember the Mountain…” she explained, voice faint and a shadow of the horrors of the Mountain flashed over her pale features.

Anya felt a painful tugging at her heart as understanding dawned on her mind, she gave the girl’s fingers another reassuring squeeze.

“She is not here again…” Marie noticed looking around the room with huge grey eyes, tears continued to run down her cheeks.

Anya thought that her charge would be referring to Ontari’s absence, but she had sent the nightblood back into her old room for the night. The nightblood would have been able to catch some sleep that way at least. The general was surprised when Marie shook her head again and said in a quivering voice that she meant Lexa.

The way the child spoke the commander’s name sounded different and Anya quickly assured “She was as worried about you, as I was, and she will come immediately…”

The general made to stand up, but Marie suddenly held onto her hands with a vice like grip and the child’s voice was a pitiful whine “Don’t leave ….”

“Marie, it is alright” Anya tried to sooth the child. The pronunciation of Lexa’s name had sounded more like the girl had usually used it and was lacking the harder pronunciation of Trigedasleng again, so it seemed Marie was remembering enough of the commander now to feel connected to her as well again. But Anya did not wish for a repetition of what had transpired with Arla. She was sure Lexa would come to see Marie immediately, no matter with what the woman had actually been occupied and it was more important than ever that Marie understood exactly that.

With the way things had been going with the coalition and Ice Nation, it was probable that Lexa was either already in a meeting with the ambassadors or at least preparing for one. Ice Nation warriors had made a few attempts to pass their borders and there already had been losses on both sides. It would not be long now, before the coalition’s armies would have banded together and could march north.

 “I will return in a moment” Anya assured her upset charge and tried to pry her fingers loose. The general had not expected for Marie to truly let go, for the child to suddenly fling herself at her.

But the girl was sobbing against her neck moments later, pleading with her over and over not to let go.

Anya tightened her arms around Marie, the position on the chair was awkward at best, but she let her fingers glide over the child’s blonde hair and her back in a soothing caress. “It is alright, Marie” she tried to reassure the girl, but it did not seem as if her attempts had any effect on the girl.

Anya waited for long moments, hoping in vain that Marie would start to calm down. When nothing changed, the general stood from the chair and felt the girl wrapping her legs around her middle instinctively. She awkwardly pushed the door to her quarters open and was relived to noticed that Gustus and Ryder still stood post at the commander’s chambers, indicating Lexa was still inside.

“Does she need a healer?” Loras, a guard posted at their chambers, asked attentively, but Anya shook her head.

The general felt Marie burrowing herself further into their embrace, when she heard Loras’ voice, but she only tightened her arms around the child, carrying her through the corridor to the commander’s quarters.

Marie’s mind was caught up with the memories which kept on returning to her mind. Little flashes of all the times she had spent alone in the general’s quarters, hurt and confused. But other things came back as well, moments of searching comfort from the commander and the general.

She did not understand all the feelings coming back rushing into her mind, but she was yearning to see the commander at the moment. She could smell Anya’s comforting scent and feel her arms around her, but she started remembering seeking the same from Lexa. The queen’s words ringing through her mind were only confusing her further, but she remembered little flashes of curling up with Lexa on an armchair and listening to her reading something to her and falling asleep curled into the woman, hearing her soothing whispers.

Gustus’ dark eyes were worried when the burly guard took in Marie’s condition. The man had already heard what happened and although the healers had been sure the poisoning would not be lethal, he felt compassionate for the girl. He had noticed the child acting strangely for days and had not thought to look more deeply into the cause of her behaviour.

Lexa whirled around to the door, when she heard it being pushed open. A small part of her hoped to see Clarke return as they had had a rather heated argument only mere moments ago. Her nerves had been frayed for the better part of the last day and the night, now that the preparations to march against the Ice Nation were coming to a close, she had proposed to Clarke that she wished for her to remain within the capitol. To say that the blonde woman had not reacted well, would be the understatement of the millennium, so Lexa’s mood had already soured considerably, mixed with the fact that Marie had apparently not gotten better overnight, Lexa had a scathing remark on the tip of her tongue already.

But her words never made it past her lips, when she recognized Anya striding into her quarters.

Lexa furrowed her brow, worry increasing tenfold, when she recognized Marie clinging to the general’s body strongly and audibly crying. She had been in the process of applying her war paint, but she put the thin brush down instantly.

She distinctly heard Marie repeating a mumbling of “she is not here” between heart wrenching sobbing sounds, but Lexa had no idea who the girl was referring to. She had just been in the general’s quarters for a few minutes the previous day, but Marie did not seem to have reacted to her presence at all and was obviously occupied with vomiting without end.

“Marie” Anya tried to get the girl’s attention, convincing the child to look up, so that she could notice her surroundings.

“What happened to her?” Lexa asked tentatively, stepping closer to the both of them cautiously.

Lexa’s voice seemed to register somewhere in the back of Marie’s mind.

The girl’s grey eyes seemed huge and a weird mixture of recognition and confusion flashed through them as they connected with Lexa’s worried green eyes.

Lexa reacted instinctively when the girl loosened her hands around Anya’s neck and stretched them out towards her. She was surprised slightly by the strength Marie displayed in clinging to her coat and she felt the girl’s tears dampening her neck only moments later.

To say the commander was confused by the girl’s display would not have been enough to describe the emotions battling through Lexa’s mind. Nothing had pointed towards the fact that Marie had truly started to regain memories associated to her and Lexa’s hope had started to dwindle down again.

“She remembers the Mountain” Anya commented, voice heavy and brown eyes still filled with worry.

At the mention of the Mountain Marie’s fingers seemed to form into claws and Lexa felt them painfully scratching at the skin of her neck, where the child had fisted the collar of her coat into tight fists.

Lexa closed her eyes tightly, tightening her arm’s around the girl’s body pressed against her own. She could not stop herself from wondering why the girl needed to remember exactly the Mountain before so many other things which would be enough to make her realize their deep connection. She feared that the Mountain would only be associated with negative memories for the girl. But at least her mumblings made sense now. She herself had been meant by Marie, because she had not been with the girl neither during the Mountain nor in the weeks Marie had been injured afterwards, at least not that the child would remember.

Marie had told her later, after the failed assassination attempt staged by Arla, that she had been disappointed every time she woke and usually only always found Arla, sometimes Anya, but never word from the commander.

“I am here now” Lexa whispered reassuringly into the girl’s ears, although internally she prepared herself already for the moment Marie’s senses would truly return. It was clear she was upset deeply and Lexa feared that once she thought a little bit more rationally, the girl would push her away again.

“Cancel the meeting for now” the commander addressed her general, tone already indicating that nothing would convince Lexa to leave her quarters now.

Anya nodded with a slight frown. She knew how important the meetings with the ambassadors were now to truly organize and finalize their first strategies, but she could understand wholeheartedly that Lexa was going to take a few hours simply to reconnect with Marie, now that she finally could. She doubted Titus would be pleased though.

Lexa was glad she had not yet put on her sash and shoulder guard, but she was already starting to feel quite heated under the warm coat and Marie’s body pressed against her front.

Lexa manoeuvred them onto an armchair and kept on soothing the girl, hoping that the child would run out of tears eventually.

The application of her glove kept on tangling with the girl’s blonde hair and against Marie’s surprisingly loud protests, Lexa shortly let go of the child’s body and divested herself off the gloves at least, letting them drop on the floor carelessly. She tried to open the buckles of her coat as well, they could hardly be comfortable for Marie to lean against, although the bite of the metal did not seem to discourage the child from pressing unbelievingly close to her.

Lexa hissed under breath, when in the attempt to protect Marie’s fair skin from the buckles, she had cut her own palm on the sharp edge of one of the buckles.

Marie’s grey eyes truly looked at Lexa now, hearing the hiss and her gaze lingered on the commander’s palm, black blood was slowly extravasating out of the cut.

Lexa did not know on how to interpret the strange look within Marie’s eyes and wanted to whip her palm on her pants, the cut could hardly be deep after all, she had been more surprised than anything else.

But Marie suddenly gripped her wrist with surprising strength and Lexa shivered involuntarily when the girl’s finger tips ghosted directly over the cut.

She gasped when the girl’s fingers suddenly appeared to shine and she felt as if liquid fire was burning the slight cut from her hand.

Marie blinked her eyes in confusion as she abruptly let go of the commander’s fingers. She had no idea what had prompted her to take the woman’s hand or what exactly had happened just now. She searched the commander’s face but she did not find the amount of surprise she would have expected.

“Have I done this before…?” she asked, voice shaking strongly.

Lexa awkwardly tried to prevent the girl form falling from the armchair backwards, as the girl now leaned back from her. She nodded with a cautious expression “I have seen you do this a few times” she assured the obviously confused girl.

The commander was relived that the girl looked visibly healthier again than she had during the previous day, although her complexion was still pale, she did not look waxen any longer.

Marie could simply not understand what had happened exactly a moment ago. She had felt strangely calm and she had not thought at all about what she was doing, it had been pure instinct. “You are still here…” the child remarked in a weird tone. Marie was still missing too much from her memory to truly grasp the depth of the love that had connected them for weeks before her disappearance.

Lexa nodded with a slight furrow to her brow. She was not entirely sure what the girl meant with her words, but it would not even cross her mind to attend the scheduled meeting with the ambassadors when Marie obviously needed her to be there now. She would deal with Titus and the ambassadors later. Lexa held on to the girl’s body with one arm and although the position was probably uncomfortable to both of them, neither of them moved. Lexa worried she would startle the girl if she attempted to draw her a little closer to herself and it looked as if Marie was too caught up in her thoughts to even contemplate her current position.

Lexa did not know how long they had sat in this weird position until the doors to her quarters were opened again and Anya strode back inside, surprisingly accompanied by Clarke and Laurel.

Clarke sat down next to Lexa, looking at Marie with a kind smile and greeted the girl in a gentle tone “Anya told me you remember quite a lot more now. Are you still feeling sick?” she questioned the girl cautiously.

Marie nodded to the first part of the blonde woman’s statement and shook her head in the negative to the last part, but remained mute. Her eyes flicking back and forth between Anya and Lexa, clearly seeking some sort of directions on how to act.

Marie’s whole frame stiffened visibly when Laurel addressed her, asking the girl firmly which symptoms she had suffered from during the last days.

Lexa shook her head at their charge, when a tear rolled down her cheek and she whipped it away gently, although her firm was firm “Do not cry now, Marie, answer her, honestly” she ordered the child.

Marie seemed to swallow forcefully, before she met the older healer’s gaze. Her voice was shaking strongly when she said that she had not felt anything off at first, but that her stomach had started to feel queasy and she did not feel rested any longer. Horror etched into her features when she admitted to Anya that she had started to see Nia appear in front of her suddenly, prompting her slip and injury during their training.

Lexa and Anya both seemed visibly torn between their clear anger at the girl for being so careless and not expressing her pronounced fear of sleeping and feeling sorry for the girl. It was apparent the girl had suffered enough by the adverse effects of the tonic without them actually needing to punish the child.

To their shared relieve, Laurel proclaimed that she regarded lasting adverse effects as unprobeable. Although the girl had overdosed herself with the tonic, the poisoning seemed to have been mild and if she had started to develop an addiction it would be only slight as well and should be overcome easily enough.

Marie nodded with drooped shoulders when the healer instilled firmly that she could not be given any form of sleeping aid for the next weeks and that she needed to learn to cope with the ghosts of her past in another form.

Anya had surprisingly been able to convince Titus to postpone the meeting until the following day, so Lexa’s schedule was free for the next hours.

Clarke watched with the hint of a smile how overly cautious and gentle Lexa handled the girl, the child had not moved a single centimetre since their entrance and it did not appear as if Marie wanted to climb down from Lexa’s lap anytime soon.

“Have you had breakfast yet?” Lexa questioned the girl in a calm tone.

Marie still seemed to be miles away with her thought and Anya answered for her “No, we have not. I have directly come here with her”. Although the child was clearly not almost hysterical any longer, seeing her almost apathetic was not soothing in the slightest.

“Her mind is probably trying to catch up with all the memories she regained” Clarke mused, she kept her voice low and soft and did not appear as if Marie was paying any mind to her surroundings at the moment. She could image just how much of impressions the girl would need to work through if she remembered all of the Mountain all of a sudden.

 

Chapter 177

“She healed a minor cut on my hand” Lexa reported to Anya and Clarke, she still tried to get Marie to take something to eat for herself, but it seemed she could try to convince with the wall instead and have the same result.

Anya looked genuinely surprised by that piece of information. If Marie remembered her healing talent, it would be logical to assume that their charge could soon remember everything of their shared time together.

Clarke looked rather impressed as well. She guessed that Marie suppressing her own dreams for the span of a few days, but still being confronted to triggers to her memories every day, had prompted the girl’s mind to try to process everything now during awareness. “She should come back to herself with time, though it would probably be better if she slept for a bit” Clarke surmised to the other two women. She excused herself afterwards, Anya had run into her when she had wanted to leave the tower and make her rounds visiting their various patients who needed daily attention. If Marie was lucky and Clarke dearly hoped the little girl would have some luck, she would only suffer very mild adverse effects for the next few days, but it was unrealistic to hope that her sleeping problems would just vanish like that.

When her arm began to ache slightly from her effort to keep Marie from falling down, Lexa cautiously pulled the girl closer to herself.

The child seemed to react on instinct as she inched even closer and laid her head against the commander’s neck.

Anya could still see the girl’s grey eyes being wide open but seemingly not focused on anything.

Lexa resumed caressing the girl’s back gently and hummed the lullaby under her breath, which had usually worked to sooth the girl to sleep.

In minutes Anya could watch Marie’s grey eyes starting to droop close, her body slackening in Lexa’s hold and breaths evened out as she drifted off into slumber.

Cautious not to wake the sleeping girl, Lexa carried the child over to her bed and put her down, pulling a fur around her and tucking her in. She waited a few moments, standing beside the bed, making sure that the girl remained asleep. Gently Lexa brushed a strand of the girl’s blonde hair out of her face and returned to the couch, sitting down with a sigh.

She had waited for what felt like a whole eternity, for the girl to remember her, but she did not feel as relieved about her progress as she had hoped.

“It will get better once she truly remembers” Anya commented, picking up on the commander’s way of thought.

“Will it truly?” Lexa shot back, voice tinted heavily with doubt, shoulders slumped slightly.

Anya’s brow furrowed, so Lexa elaborated “Clarke thinks that the signs of the trauma she suffered under Nia will only increase, when Marie remembers who she is and allows herself to express herself again.”

Anya sighed, but she nodded in acknowledgment “We should be able to help her better then. I doubt she would have taken the tonic without permission if she would have truly trusted me…”

“It was not your fault” Lexa assured the general, voice firm and unyielding. The guilt within the general’s brown eyes had been easy enough to interpret without further words.

Anya looked over to Marie minutely, but changed the subject quickly “What have you two argued about?” She could not shake the thought from her mind that she should have noticed something was off with the girl.

Lexa was slightly caught off guard by the sudden change and she wondered how the general could even know about the little fight she had with Clarke. But the woman knew her since her early childhood, so it was no wonder, she still possessed the ability to read her easily. When her former first kept on taxing her with an inquiring gaze, Lexa relented with a huff “I told Clarke that I want her to stay in Polis when the army marches to Azgeda”.

Anya raised a brow in surprise and a snort escaped her lips “And you even considered Wanheda would agree to that?” there was a mocking quality to her tone.

Lexa’s lips thinned, but she sighed in obvious defeat “Clarke has already told me quite elaborately what her opinions are on the matter…”

“I understand, why you would prefer for her to remain here, protected” Anya remarked and her voice was sympathetic now “You will not be able to protect Clarke from everything, Lexa”.

Lexa nodded and her voice was heavy as she agreed “I know that, but she is no warrior”.

Anya inclined her head in agreement “She is not, no, and I doubt she will ever become one. But healers are needed within the ranks of an army as well.”

Lexa clenched her teeth against the sound argument. Healers were an essential part of every army. She was surprised by the general’s next words though.

“But leaving Clarke here, would only divert your attention” Anya surmised “Marie will be going as well”.

Lexa raised a brow questioningly, they had not discussed yet if Marie would be part of the army or remain behind with the novitiates in Polis.

“She will not stay here alone” Anya added, catching the objection within the commander’s gaze. She would not leave the girl on her own ever again, if she could help it.

“Marie would not be alone” Lexa reasoned, although her tone lacked the attempt to convince her general otherwise. If Marie would truly now seek out their closeness once again, leaving her behind in Polis was simply not an option. Fortunately, Lexa was convinced the army would not be ready to begin their march for another two weeks, maybe even a full moon, hopefully giving their charge some more possibilities to recover.

“She will accompany us” Anya repeated, a little force within her tone.

Lexa nodded her consent “What about Ontari?” she inquired.

“She seemed extremely worried by Marie’s condition” Anya narrated although she was not surprised by the nightblood’s compassion for her younger charge “She is still doubting my judgement and she questions each and every lesson. She does not seem convinced anymore that I am trying to kill her accidentally though” amusement was clear within the general’s tone at the last part.

Lexa snorted lightly under her breath, she could still remember vividly that she herself had presumed this hidden agenda behind a few of her mentor’s lessons.

“I should probably go and see her, she will be relieved to hear that Marie has woken” Anya surmised and stood. Lexa was capable on her own to watch over their charge, now that her meeting had been cancelled.

The commander nodded and watched her general sweep from her quarters with quick strides, only after making sure that Marie was still asleep and not running a fever. Risha slipped through the doors, when they opened.

Lexa smiled slightly at the wolf, but once Risha caught the fresh scent of her human and located Marie’s sleeping form, Risha completely ignored the commander and instantly jumped up onto the bed.

Lexa watched with an amused smirk, as the wolf nosed herself beneath Marie’s arms, efficiently being enveloped in the girl’s arms now. They both seemed content cuddled together.

The commander busied herself with pouring over a model which had taken up residence in a corner of her quarters. The model was a replica of the borders shared between Ice Nation and the rest of the coalition and what they so far knew of the lands of Azgeda. Lexa had asked Ontari for conferment of certain routes and bridges and the placement and size of villages, every time the younger nightblood had been within her quarters.

Although Azgeda had been part of the coalition for some time now, it was the only clan Lexa had not visited so far on a friendly visit and the model mostly relied on her own scouts’ words.

Ontari had proofed more helpful in adding little facts than Lexa had expected. The nightblood girl had seemed absolutely willing to tell her whatever she wanted to know. It seemed that Nia’s treatment of Marie had finally cost the queen her nightblood’s loyalty for good.

Lexa was still contemplating allowing Ontari to join their army as well. The girl’s knowledge of the land would be an advantage not to be scoffed at. Ultimately, the girl was old enough to gather real experiences of war. She had been Ontari’s age, when she had taken over as the commander and she had already gotten enough experiences while being Anya’s second. Lexa was aware that no matter how fast they tried to construct the novitiate’s tutelage, nothing would prepare them for a real battle, if she did not take them to one. Although Ontari was without a doubt old enough, Lexa was also considering taking Aden along.

Lexa moved around a few wooden figurines, representing units which would fight under her, coming from all twelve clans. The main problem was that most of the clans were severely unprepared to fight within the north. She could not send soldiers into the land, where the snow did not thaw at all, without proper clothing and equipment, they would freeze before they could reach their destination. So, she had commanded all of the troops to make the detour to Polis, to have them equipped in a suitable manner, but it was starting to devour much more resources than Lexa had predicted and the progress they had made in the last weeks was much less than she had hoped for.

Lexa’s attention was called away from all of her planning instantly, when Marie started to toss and turn under the furs. Risha had lowly whined at the girl and nudged her with her muzzle, apparently trying to wake the child up.

Lexa walked over to the bed quickly and vehemently shooed Risha down. The wolf scurried with a clearly sullen expression, turning her back to the commander and rolling together in front of the fire place, icy blue eyes still hefted onto her human.

“Marie” Lexa addressed the girl in a soothing tone, gently grasping onto the child’s shoulder and efficiently stopping her tossing around by immobilizing the child with mild force.

Marie’s grey eyes snapped open immediately at the contact and her breathing was ragged, eyes wide with silent horror.

“Breath, Marie, you are safe” Lexa assured the girl in a soft tone, letting go of her shoulders and easing away slightly to give the girl more room.

Marie’s breathing remained ragged for long moments and the horror morphed into confusion “You sang to me…” she mumbled disbelievingly.

Lexa looked at the child questioningly at the off-hand comment, the only time she could remember truly singing to the girl had been in the medical bay of Arkadia, when they had waited long days for the girl to either wake up or die. “You remember Arkadia?” Lexa checked, tone diffident.

Marie gasped audibly and her eyes seemed to turn far away.

Lexa watched the girl with worry rising in her mind, she could not see clearly if the child was still breathing or if she might have some kind of seizure.

“I remember…” Marie finally gasped out, tone quivering and grey eyes still wide.

“You remember what?” Lexa pried gently, sitting down on the edge of the mattress.

“Everything…” the child breathed out and the relief was palpable in her expression. A tentative smile grew on her features, before she suddenly faced Lexa fully and flung herself at the commander.

Lexa did not react in the first few moments. The simple one worded answer kept on repeating in her mind, but she had difficulties to grasp its meaning.

“I am sorry for forgetting…” the girl said, her breaths tickling at the sensitive skin of Lexa’s throat.

Lexa tightened her arms around the girl, feeling relieve course through her veins. She did not understand why she felt like laughing and crying at the same time and she had to force her voice to be even remotely steady “You have done nothing to apologize for” she reassured the girl. Lexa clearly remembered how Marie had apologized for almost dying after the child had miraculously recovered from her aneurysm.

Marie stiffened in the embrace when incidents during her time with the Ice queen flashed through her mind. She had tortured other people, she had killed other people and only because the Ice queen had asked it of her, she had not even questioned her orders.

The girl’s voice was quivering strongly when she disagreed with Lexa’s assumption “But I have…” she claimed strongly, easing out of Lexa’s arms “…I have followed her orders…” the child began to sob, shame written over her features.

“Sshh, Marie, listen closely to me” Lexa addressed the girl, voice strong and stern “You have not done anything to feel guilty for. You did what you needed to survive”.

Marie’s grey eyes looked huge and haunted in her pale face and a sheen of tears already glistened in them, but she nodded in acknowledgment, trying hard to keep a straight face.

Lexa smiled reassuringly at her charge, she knew that it would take time for the girl to accept such words. Ontari had told them some things about what had transpired under the queen’s reign. Anya and Lexa had shared the opinion that bringing into balance what Marie had been forced to do without her memories would be hard once she regained them and recognized her own personality. But they would both repeat the words until they sunk into their charge’s mind.

When the girl’s stomach growled audibly, Lexa said “Now you need to eat something”. The commander stood from the bed and offered a hand to Marie, who took it without hesitating even for the fraction of a second.

Marie smiled tentatively and her smile grew, when she spotted a honey cake among the things still left on the table.

“Can I name the foal, Lexa?” the child asked, remembering the foal in the stables, her voice was laced with enthusiasm.

The girl’s enthusiasm felt infectious and a mirroring smile grazed Lexa’s lips “Of course” she instantly agreed to her charge’s question.

Risha trotted over to Marie, tilting her head in front of the girl. Marie giggled at the wolf’s restraint, placed the cake back onto the table and sat down on the floor directly in front of Risha and enveloping the wolf with her arms “I missed you” she whispered into Risha’s ears and her giggles grew in volume when the wolf licked over her face in reaction.

Marie stayed sitting on the floor with Risha for a long time, it was obvious how much the wolf was enjoying the girl’s attention.

After long moments of silence, Marie’s expression fell visibly and she stood up from the floor, sitting down closely to Lexa.

Lexa had read over a few reports, only glancing over to her charge from time to time, but she put the reports aside and turned her full attention to Marie.

“You truly mourned me…?” the girl asked, voice soft and low.

Lexa raised a brow questioningly and she sighed under her breath. She could understand that the girl was unsure of herself, but she should not doubt their feelings for her.

She stood from the couch without a word and went over to the bed, bending down and retrieving the box hidden beneath.

Marie watched the commander turn away with a frown.

“Come here” Lexa asked her charge in a calm tone and sat down on the edge of the bed, opening the large box. Clarke had drawn several sketches of Marie for her and she had kept every single one, together with the two daggers she had given to her.

Marie trudged over to the bed, visibly unsure as she peered into the box in the commander’s hands.

Lexa smiled melancholic as her fingers caressed over a necklace which had belonged to Costia. She took out all of Clarke’s drawing of the child and handed the papers to her.

Marie leaved through the pictures with widened eyes. The drawings were done to an amazing detail and she recognized herself easily. “Clarke has drawn me?” she whispered in wonder, there was no doubt who had done the sketches. A few of the drawings looked smudged in places, as if water had dripped onto them. She internally wondered if Lexa had cried over the pictures.

Lexa retrieved Marie’s blonde braid from an inner pocket of her coat and handed it to Marie “Yes, Clarke drew you. She did a few for Anya as well”.

“I am sorry for causing all of you pain…” the girl said, lips visibly trembling.

“Marie, it has not been your fault” Lexa emphasised as she watched the girl run her fingers over her own braid. “We should burn them” the commander added thoughtfully.

Marie’s face scrunched up in confusion and her voice sounded almost sullen “I liked my hair better when it was longer…”

Lexa snorted slightly at the childishness of the comment, but she reassured her quickly “It will grow back with time.” Burning the girl’s braids together could emphasis to all of them, that Marie had truly returned.

Marie’s expression was still rather offended. She now remembered Echo from before she had brought her to the queen. She had never felt truly comfortable in the woman’s presence and her instincts seemed to have been right for once. She frowned slightly when she realized that she had not once seen Roan so far.

Lexa was slightly surprised when Marie inquired about the prince of Azgeda, but she merely explained that he had been confined to his quarters, for his own security.

“There will be war soon?” Marie asked next.

Lexa was unable to interpret the child’s emotions regarding the impending war, but she nodded with a sigh “Nia cannot be allowed to remain queen of Azgeda any longer. Taking you has been a clear violation of the laws of the coalition”. The commander had to try to keep anger from infusing into her tone.

Marie’s voice was biting as she agreed “You will kill her, right?”. Fear was coursing through her mind at the possibility of encountering the queen ever again.

“She will never lay another finger on you” Lexa assured, voice deathly serious and her green eyes blazing.

Marie nodded, swallowing past the lump lodged in her throat, leaning against the woman and feeling her arm snake around her body immediately. She sighed in contentment, before she remembered Ontari and the other nightblood children “When will Anya come back? And Ontari? And can I see that novitiates? And…”

Lexa smiled good-naturedly at her young charge, amused by her sudden twist back in personality. The chirpy girl, who was not even stopping a second to take a breath in her questioning, seemed almost unchanged by the whole ordeal of the last few months. The harshness of her features, so unlike someone so young, belied that observation though. Lexa knew it would be foolish to assume that Marie was fine now again simply because she remembered everything again.

Marie fell silent abruptly, when she noticed Lexa’s amused expression and that she had not given the commander a chance to answer even a single of her questions. Sheepishness mixed with slight fear flashed over her features minutely.

“Breath, Marie” Lexa addressed the girl, voice still tinted with amusement slightly, but a hint of worry glistened in her green eyes. She let her hand run soothingly over the girl’s back and waited until the child seemed to have relaxed again, before she said “Anya and Ontari will probably come back soon, depending if Anya had planned to train her or not. You shall see the novitiates again soon…” and after a slight sigh, she added “…if you insist on seeing prince Roan, that can be organized as well. You still can visit your foal whenever you like, during daytime” the last addition, the commander thought of as an afterthought. Anya had told her that the girl had asked to visit the foal, when she was supposed to go to bed. She feared that Anya would have her hands full with getting the girl to sleep. But the commander frowned slightly, before Marie’s abduction the girl had still shared a bed with herself and Anya, she dearly hoped such would not be necessary again. The arrangement would not work again, with Clarke and Ontari now in the picture. She would still caution Clarke to sleep fully clothed now, in case Marie would seek her out during night time.

A slight blush creeped up on Marie’s cheeks at the last part and she nodded, her expression turned slightly desperate though “I just want to forget the nightmares…”

Lexa nodded with a heavy sigh. The irony of the girl’s statement was not lost on her though, Marie had been searching for her lost memories for months, making new memories she now wished to be able to forget. “I can understand your wish Marie, but you will have to face them” Lexa admonished gently “You will not be alone now and you will push through stronger”.

Marie nodded, although her expression looked teary all of a sudden. “Why did she do it…?” the girl asked, a sob escaping her lips and she slung her arms around Lexa’s neck, burying herself against the commander’s body.

Lexa’s lips formed a thin line, an expression of torment on her features and her voice had lost its strength “I do not know, Marie” she answered the girl truthfully. She knew that a large factor in Nia’s decision would have been the girl’s connection to her, but telling Marie that would not make it easier in the slightest. Nia was simply a monster who rejoiced in the misery of others’ and Marie would recognize that with time. She gently carded her fingers through the girl’s shortened blonde locks and whispered soothing words into her ear.

It seemed to take Marie a very long time to calm down again, but Lexa was content to simply hold the girl and sooth her down. It was obvious her charge felt comfortable, cuddled against her side and Lexa slowly bend over to take a book from the table and started to read the story to Marie in a calm tone. She did not know, if Marie truly listened to her words or if the girl just enjoyed the closeness to her, but Lexa continued reading to her softly.

 

 

 

Chapter 178

Anya swept from the commander’s quarters with quick strides intent to go looking for Ontari, she would start searching the nightblood on the training pits as Titus had scheduled another sparring session for the novitiates.

On her way through the tower she promptly ran into Clarke. The blonde’s features still clearly showed her suppressed anger and Anya was aware that she had interrupted an argument between Clarke and Lexa by storming into the commander’s quarters unannounced.

“Finished already with your patients?” the general asked daring, stopping Clarke in her tracks.

Frustration flashed through Clarke’s blue eyes and they seemed to blaze in their anger “Laurel send me away…” disbelieve was colouring her tone strongly.

Anya snorted lightly under her breath, amusement dancing through her brown eyes visibly. It was obvious that the blonde healer was at least as frustrated with herself, as she probably was with Lexa. “You are aware that Lexa wishes for you to be as protected as possible?” she asked.

Clarke huffed, glaring lightly at the general “Lexa cannot truly think that I would wait idle, while she rides off into war?!” her voice rose in apparent agitation.

Anya sighed when she noticed the guards posted around the corridor shuffling their feet uncomfortably, trying to appear as if they had heard nothing. The relationship between the commander and the blonde woman was still mostly kept in secret, although most of those working in the tower would have been aware of it. It was not customary for a commander to commit into a relationship and take a partner. Commanders before had had lovers or affairs, but nothing permanent and surely not with someone who could be regarded as almost an equal to the commander. Anya understood the guards’ unease, but while Titus was still mostly worrying Clarke would divert Lexa’s attention from her duty someday, she knew that Clarke had given the commander strength in the last months and would continue to support her in ways, only she could now.

She motioned Clarke into an unused room, closing the door behind them and giving them at least some privacy.

Annoyance was palpable on Clarke’s features, but she waited for the general to continue with what she expected to be a tirade to ease up on Lexa.

“Lexa knows that you will not stay in Polis willingly” Anya amended and Clarke raised a brow in clear surprise. Anya’s tone was almost teasing when she said “She had to chose someone as stoic as a mule…”

Clarke huffed, crossing her arms over her chest “Staying in Polis would not be much safer than accompanying her” she reasoned, ignoring Anya’s jab.

The general nodded in agreement “You would be better protected and not part in the actual battle…”

“Don’t try to convince me to stay!” Clarke interrupted the general forcefully, blue eyes boring into Anya’s angrily.

The general’s lips thinned visibly at being interrupted so rudely and her tone was slightly clipped “I had not planned to. You know that Lexa already lost Costia”.

Clarke nodded, sadness flickering through her blue eyes. Although she did not know much about Costia, she assumed she must have been a wonderful and great girl to catch Lexa’s heart.

Anya swallowed forcefully before she said “You have seen what Nia has done to Marie, she will stop at nothing to destroy Lexa. I doubt she would survive losing you in the same way”.

Clarke’s expression looked pained and her voice had gotten considerably calmer and she sighed deeply “She would survive…” There was not even the smallest flicker of doubt in her mind. Lexa would not abandon her people like that, she might lose her heart, but she would remain the commander.

“Costia was a scout, one of our best” Anya began and her brown eyes seemed far away.

Clarke listened to the general’s words carefully, she had not dared to ask Lexa more about Costia. She had always been curious, but the timing had never seemed fitting and after Marie’s disappearance, Clarke had stopped looking for the perfect moment, not wanting to burden Lexa with reliving old painful memories in addition.

“Costia was also not content to remain within Polis. The coalition was still composed of eleven clans and Azgeda resisted strongly. Costia insisted on leading a scouting team towards their border. Lexa and she had been quarrelling about the decision for days and Lexa had been sick with worry when Costia simply left without waiting for orders” Anya sighed. She had been part of the group to look for their missing scouts and she still remembered the scenery they found. “Costia’s scouting team had not even passed the border before they had been ambushed by Azgeda warriors. They were still on Trikru land. We found the rest of her unit a few days later. All of them slain, including the horses. But Costia’s body was not among them…”

Clarke sucked in a startled breath. Somehow she had pictured Costia having been abducted from the safety of Polis’ walls. She could understand that Lexa would feel better if she was as far away from the impeding war as possible. But there was no guarantee for how long the march into the north could take or even when they would start their trek. Clarke did not wish to be separated for weeks or if things did not go according to plans months even.

“…Costia had been missing for weeks, before her head was delivered to Lexa’s bed” Anya finished.

Clarke’s expression looked drawn and sad, but to her the conclusion was different. “Both of us would only worry about the other, if we separated” Clarke reasoned “And I will surely not sit back and wait for her to return. Something she keeps on repeating, she can never promise…” Clarke’s tone had taken on a frustrated edge again. She hated it how much Lexa seemed to contemplate her own death and did not seem affected by it at all.

Anya nodded “A warrior can never promise to return again from battle” her voice was steadfast. This knowledge was a simple fact of all their lives.

Clarke’s blue eyes blazed and her voice rose again “But how can you all be so fucking calm about your own death! It is as if Lexa would not see her own death as anything important…”

“Lexa has been raised with the knowledge that she may one day become the commander, committing her life solely to our people. Death is a simple part of life and another will rise as the next commander after Lexa” Anya calmly replied. She could understand a fraction of the blonde’s agitation though. She did not wish to see her previous second fall and she had heard Marie discussing the concept with Lexa before. Their charge had also not understood the commander’s calmness about her own death.

Clarke let out a frustrated huff, grumbling something unintelligible under her breath. How should Lexa think any different if she had heard the same facts for all her life?

“Marie and you have given Lexa a new reason to wish to return though…” Anya amended as her expression turned noticeably softer. She was thankful that Clarke had been there for Lexa in the last few months.

Clarke looked slightly perplexed by the general’s words and she knew that it was as close to a thank you and acknowledgment she would ever get to with the stoic woman.

“… and Lexa already accepted that you will be part of the army as a healer” Anya added. After a moment of silence, the general inclined her head once, signalling an end to the conversation and swept from the room without another word.

Anya hoped that the commander and Clarke were going to cease their argument. The upcoming weeks would be tense enough without added tension.

She found Titus together with the novitiates exactly where she had expected them. Anya remained in the background for a few minutes, watching Ontari spar with Kato. It was no secret that the nightblood from the Plain Riders had no liking for the older girl. Lexa had been quite disappointed with the boy when he proclaimed Ontari not worthy of her nightblood, something she did not think any of them could judge.

Titus was on the other side of the training pits and too far away to hear Kato taunting Ontari, but Anya did catch the words undetected.

“The general already had enough of you?” the boy sneered, barely holding his defence upright against the harsh counterattack from Ontari.

Ontari ground her teeth together angrily, unwilling to show that the boy’s words did affect her at all. Internally she was seething, how dare Kato claim something like that? She knew that Anya had only send her back to the other novitiates to focus on Marie. It had worked out better between them so far than she had ever expected.

It seemed to anger the sneering boy visibly that she did not react to his taunt and simply kept on sparring with him. She knew that her own skills in sword fighting were superior to the younger boy’s, but he was taller than her already and he seemed angry, so she had to watch her own guard. She doubted he would have any qualms about seriously injuring her.

Anya furrowed her brow, she would need to report to Lexa to keep closer watch on Kato. The way the nightblood seemed to be developing was worrying. She stepped closer to the training pits and immediately addressed Ontari, calling the girl over to her herself.

Titus did not look really pleased by her interruption, but the general ignored the flamekeeper. Annoying the man was a little bonus and Anya rejoiced in the little opportunities she got in that aspect.

Ontari was visibly startled by Anya’s appearance and worry flashed through her dark eyes when she noted Marie’s absence. “Is Marie alright?” she asked immediately, once she had stepped away from the other novitiates. The younger girl’s condition had worried her greatly and she still could not understand how she had missed the signs of Marie taking the sleeping tonic. She had noted that the girl was getting short tempered and unconcentrated but she had not thought anything of it.

Anya nodded “She woke up again” she said and motioned the nightblood back towards the tower.

Ontari raised a brow in obvious confusion and her voice was hesitant as she asked “You left her alone afterwards?” She did not believe so, but the younger girl was clearly not with the general.

Anya lightly glared at the nightblood “No, she remembered what has happened at the Mountain and she needed to be with the commander now”.

Ontari frowned slightly. Marie had never truly spoken to her about the Mountain at length, but she knew that the girl had been left by the commander at the Mountain and had been handed over as a part of the deal the commander had made with the Mountain Men. It was progress of course again, if she regained more memories. But she still remembered how Marie had reacted when the commander discussed her decision at the Mountain with the novitiates in a lesson. She hoped Marie would regain some more positive memories soon.

Marie had remained distant with the commander, so it surprised her slightly to hear that the blonde girl had now wished for the woman’s presence.

“She is not sick any longer?” the nightblood girl asked following the general back to the tower.

Anya nodded “The tonic will probably have left her body. But the healers cannot tell if she already developed a dependency and might show withdrawal symptoms the next days”. The general dearly hoped that Marie would not have so suffer through that as well, their charge had suffered enough already.

They walked through the tower in silence. Anya was already thinking about ways with which she could try to get Marie to sleep the following nights without the aid of the sleeping tonic. Before the girl had lost her memories, allowing her to cuddle up to you had worked wonders for Marie, but Anya highly doubted that would be an option now. Ontari wondered how they should be able to truly help Marie as well.

Anya told Ontari to wait in their quarters for dinner, while she wanted to collect Marie. She walked over to the commander’s quarters, but the scenery she walked in on, made her pause. Lexa was still reading to Marie, but she paused and looked up from the book, when she noticed that the doors to her quarters had been opened.

Anya frowned, brows knitted together, in obvious confusion at Marie being cuddled to Lexa’s side. Before she had the opportunity to inspect the girl more closely, Marie looked up and her grey eyes immediately connected with hers.

With a slight squeal Marie leaped to her feet and hurried over to the general, almost jumping at the visibly shocked woman.

Lexa placed the book back onto the table and watched her former mentor’s confusion with amusement, a smile playing around the corners of her mouth and her green eyes softened.

“I remember everything…” Marie kept on mumbling excitedly, her arms tightening around Anya’s midriff.

Anya blinked down at the girl, brown eyes widened slightly and it took her a few moments until Marie’s words truly registered in her mind. She let herself sink to her knees and caressed the girl’s cheeks with cautious fingers.

“You have regained your complete memory?” Anya checked, voice tinted strongly with awe. She did not know, if she should believe the girl’s words.

Marie nodded with an honest smile and Anya pulled her into a tight embrace. Above Marie’s head her brown eyes connected with Lexa’s shortly and the commander nodded her head with a tender expression on her features.

Anya’s thoughts were still running wild in her mind, she had truly not expected for Marie to regain her memory so suddenly. A deep sense of relieve flooded her mind, hoping dearly that everything would get easier from this point on. Although something in her mind already told her that hoping in such a way would be foolish, Clarke’s prognosis ringing through her mind again.

“I was feeling so alone…” the child started to sob out, as she remembered the months with the queen and even after returning to Polis, she had not felt truly connected to anyone anymore.

Anya tightened her arms around the girl’s body minutely “You are not alone, Marie” she reassured the girl in an honest and grave tone. She would not leave the girl behind ever again, if she could help it.

Marie nodded tearfully as she backed out of her mentor’s arms, a sheepish expression on her features, as she quickly whiped at her cheeks to erase the signs of her tears. She stiffened noticeably when she suddenly recalled something the queen had told her. “Do not cry, my dumb girl, crying is weakness. Are you weak?!” the queen’s voice resonated loudly through her mind and her focus began to blur. She felt arms holding onto her forearms and her body tensed even more in anticipation, she did not know any longer where she was.

“Marie…” Anya addressed the girl, worry tinting her tone at the glassy look within the girl’s grey eyes. She could hear the girl’s breaths coming out in short erratic bursts and it sounded as if she was having trouble breathing. She lightly shook her charge’s shoulders, trying to shake her out of whatever daze had gripped her consciousness. To Anya’s internal shock her gesture did not have a grounding effect to Marie, quiet the opposite happened. The girl forcefully took a few hurried steps back, her mouth opening and closing without emitting any kind of sound. When her back connected with a wall, the girl slid down, hugging her knees tightly to her chest, rocking back and forth, clearly struggling to breathe.

Lexa had rushed to the door hurriedly “Call for a healer!” she ordered sharply, her features drawn with worry.

Fortunately, the elevator opened just at that moment and Clarke stepped out, accompanied by Alira and another handmaid, the latter carrying trays with dinner.

Clarke’s blue eyes immediately connected with Lexa’s and she hurried through the corridor “What happened?” she asked urgently, spotting Marie pressed against a wall and Anya hovering in front of the child uncertainly.

“Marie has regained her memories, but she froze suddenly” Lexa answered, putting a hand on Anya’s shoulder and motioning to her former mentor to make a little room for Clarke to inspect Marie.

The girl had started to mumble “I am not weak” over and over again, her fingernails clawed into her palms, raising little crescent-shaped bloody wounds against her pale skin. Her mumbling stopped abruptly and her breathing seemed to get even more erratic when Clarke kneeled down in front of her and tried to get the girl’s attention.

“Panic attack” Clarke said over her shoulder “I guess something must have triggered her to have a flashback. She needs to get out of it, or she will start to hyperventilate”.

“Marie” Clarke now directly addressed the girl. When she touched Marie to get her attention, the girl flinched strongly, jerking back and out of her reach and her muttering resumed.

“Marie, you are safe” Clarke tried to reassure the girl, but her voice seemed to only agitate Marie further, so she backed off slightly.

She stepped over to Anya and Lexa, both looked highly troubled and worried by Marie’s behaviour.

“Marie…” Lexa softly addressed the child, voice gentle and soothing. Marie’s breathing seemed to ease up a little bit, but she resumed her muttering. Lexa repeated calling out to Marie a few times, but it did not seem to have any apparent effect on their charge.

“You are not weak, Marie” Lexa reassured her in a gentle tone changing her tactic. The girl’s grey eyes were still panicked and did seem unfocused, when she looked into the direction of the voice, which barely reached her consciousness.

Clarke explained under her breath to Anya, what needed to be done in order to try to help Marie out of her flashback. The child needed to recognize her surroundings again. It was a good sign that she seemed to react slightly to Lexa, but her breathing was still irregular and Clarke was worried she could still work herself into a frenzy.

No matter how often Lexa repeated her reassurances, it did not seem to ease Marie’s panic further. Blood was trickling from her palms, where she had clawed at them.

A sense of pain was the first thing, which truly registered again in Marie’s mind. Her mind was hazy and she had trouble to truly breathe in, as if something heavy was pressing down on her chest.

Marie’s grey eyes were wide and panicked, when she looked from her bloody palms around the room. Her surroundings did not match with the memory which still ghosted through her mind.

“Marie, can you tell me, where you are?” someone asked her suddenly. Her head whipped into the direction of the voice, her breathing become even more difficult.

Suddenly she felt someone take her wrist and her hand was pressed against someone’s chest. “Deep breath, Marie” another voice said. Internally Marie frowned slightly, the voice sounded soothing and familiar, but black spots were starting to dance in front of her eyes and the panic seemed to rise in her mind.

“Only concentrate on my voice, Marie” the voice repeated “Breathe in…” a pause and Marie tried to follow the voice’s order “… and out…”.

The orders repeated themselves and Marie’s breathing got calmer again slowly and she felt someone else’s heartbeat beneath her hand, rhythmic and strong.

Slowly her eyes regained some focus and Marie started to recognize her surroundings, her brows knitted together in confusion. She had been sure to be back with the queen. She could not have imagined that, could she?

“Marie, continue to breathe calmly and deeply” she now recognized the voice as Anya’s.

“Look around you” Lexa prompted gently “Can you describe to me, what you see and where you are?”

“I see you and Anya…” Marie’s voice was hesitant, laced deeply with confusion “…I am in your quarters. How did I get here?”

“You had a flashback” Clarke answered the girl’s question, but she noticed how Marie seemed to stiffen again at her voice.

Marie noticed Alira now as well and although she smiled slightly, almost shily, at the handmaid, she straightened herself and quickly stood up again.

Marie surprised all of them when she asked where Ontari was and immediately left to seek out the nightblood girl, as if nothing out of order had happened.

 

 

 

Chapter 179

Anya remained within the commander’s quarters for a few moments longer.

“So, she remembers everything now?” Clarke asked Lexa, watching the younger girl leave with a slight frown. It had not escaped her notice how Marie had not reacted really well to herself trying to help her.

“Marie remembered the Mountain, when she woke again” Anya explained “She had wished to see Lexa”.

Lexa nodded “She remembered the old lullaby I had calmed her with in the medical bay of Arkadia”.

Clarke inclined her head, deep in thought “Remembering the Ark might have been a trigger to all her memories in the end. But it truly won’t get much easier now” she sighed.

Lexa and Anya both looked at Clarke in expectance silently.

“She seems to suffer from what was previously called post traumatic stress disorder” Clarke explained.

Anya frowned, she had never heard this term.

“You might have seen a form of it already in warriors who could not cope with the effects of a battle” Clarke added.

Lexa nodded in agreement. Although it was rare for their warriors to be befallen by what they called “warrior sickness”, it did happen occasionally. But those who suffered from this form of sickness, usually never returned into the ranks of an army, their unpredictable reactions to the stress of battle made them a reliability.

“It happens rarely” Lexa said “But those usually never recover truly…” her voice trailed off. She hoped Marie could recover or the girl would never be able to function as a warrior.

Clarke shook her head immediately “Marie is young. She can recover. She needs support and it might take her months or in the worse case even years to truly recover, but it is not impossible. Her mind still needs to work through what has happened to her. But she can learn how to cope and deal with panic attacks and flashbacks”

Anya and Lexa bandied a worried look. Both of them were connected in their hope that Marie could recover and they would try to help their charge in every way possible.

“I will try to get back into contact with my mother. She surely has some case reports or strategies on how to help PTSD patients” Clarke added after a moment.

Anya nodded and proclaimed that she would go and see how Marie was. It had unsettled her slightly how seemingly fast Marie had recovered from her flashback and almost fled from the commander’s quarters.

Clarke tried to reach out to Arkadia with her radio, but her mother was occupied at the moment and Markus, who had taken her call, assured her he would tell her mother to get back in touch as soon as possible.

Lexa watched her general leave and her green eyes were slightly apologetic as they connected with her love’s blue ones.

Clarke sighed and she help up her hand, silencing Lexa on what she assumed would be an apology “You do not need to apologize, Lexa” she assured the slightly older woman and stepped closer to her, her hands resting softly on her hips.

Lexa raised her brows in silent amusement, the ghost of a smile playing around her lips.

“Anya told me something about the circumstances of Costia’s abduction” Clarke said, voice cautious and she immediately felt the commander’s body stiffen under her hands in reaction to the mentioning of Costia.

Lexa’s lips thinned visibly. She was irritated to hear that her former mentor spoke about Costia with Clarke, she trusted Anya unconditionally, but there were things better left unsaid. She had not thought it necessary to discuss about Costia with Clarke and she had not planned to do so. Costia was her past and there was no sense in dwelling on it, Clarke was her present and hopefully her future.

Lexa could not stop her mind from returning to the immediate days and weeks after Costia’s disappearance. They had been quarrelling for days before and Costia had left her in anger, something Lexa still regretted. She had always wondered if Costia would still be alive to this day, if she had not stormed out of Polis to lead a scouting mission without the commander’s approval. The uncertainty of Costia’s whereabouts had been like a slow torture to Lexa.

“I am sorry I brought Costia up” Clarke amended softly, noting on the sadness lingering within Lexa’s green eyes “I may have said that I do not wish to be a leader ever again, but I do not want to be separated from you either, Lexa, we are one now”.

Lexa slightly shook her head “We are not one, yet” she retorted prompting a confused frown from Clarke.

Lexa sighed and her expression was almost downtrodden “You have already seen a bonding ceremony, Clarke, but I am afraid I will never be able to offer you that…” There had never been a commander to be bonded to a partner and Lexa doubted that her people would accept such an act.

Clarke shook her head vehemently “I do not need a ceremony to feel connected to you, Lexa” she reassured the other woman, voice strong and resolute.

“I know it was foolish to think you would agree to remain behind” Lexa appeased the blonde with a slight sigh under her breath.

“You have vowed to me to treat my needs like your own” Clarke reminded the commander with a gentle teasing glint in her eyes “It is my need to be with you, always. I would worry myself sick”.

Lexa snorted slightly, shacking her head subtly. Having her own words thrown back at herself like that, was something she had not truly expected from Clarke.

“And don’t think that I have not noticed the similarities between your vows to me and what Lincoln and Octavia have vowed to each other” Clarke teased, but her expression turned sober only moments later.

A blush dusted over Lexa’s cheeks, giving her an almost adorable expression. She was saved from having to give Clarke a verbal answer, by the radio buzzing back to life.

Clarke smiled slightly, before she answered her mother.

Lexa listened on in what advice Abby had on how to deal with Marie, her head soon began swimming with all the little details they would need to keep watch over. It sounded complicated and taxing on all of those involved in dealing with Marie on a daily basis. It seemed as if there was much, they could be doing wrong, but Abby had many strategies at hand on how to help Marie with working through her trauma. Essentially, it sounded as if Marie would need to regain trust into herself, her sense of security and her ability to have trust in others and it would be a developing process for the upcoming months. Abby warned them that they could be expecting many setbacks and not to expect that one day would be like another.

Lexa sighed deeply, after Clarke had discarded the radio, saying goodbye to her mother. The commander’s shoulders seemed weighted down and doubt was visible on her features, doubting the fact that they would be enough to help Marie overcome all that had been done to her at the hands of Nia.

 

Anya walked through the corridor quickly, entering her quarters without knocking. She was surprised to find Marie glaring strongly at Ontari.

The nightblood stood opposite of the blonde girl, arms crossed over her chest defiantly and it looked as if the older girl had started to pack together her few possessions.

“Tell her she is not being thrown out of your quarters now, Anya!” Marie demanded, anger strongly colouring her tone and her hands were balled into fists at her sides.

Anya frowned visibly at the scene. Why would the nightblood think to be thrown out of her quarters? “Of course, she is not, Marie” she assured the agitated girl quickly and turned her questioning gaze to Ontari.

Surprise flashed through the nightblood girl’s dark eyes before her expression turned defensive and she retorted “Marie has regained her memories now, so I am not needed her any longer…”

Anya sighed under her breath, pinching the bridge of her nose in annoyance, while Marie was still glaring at Ontari.

“Marie, sit down and eat something” the general ordered, motioning to the already set table with a strict expression, before she turned to Ontari “And you better curb this nonsense quickly” her tone was sharp and did not leave room for a discussion.

Ontari visibly frowned, obviously not believing the general’s words.

“Sit and eat dinner, Ontari” Anya ordered sharply and when the nightblood girl still visibly hesitated she added strongly “The fact that I took you as a second, is not connected to Marie in any way.”

It was obvious Ontari was still doubting her words, but the girl sat down obediently, not wanting to test the general any further. The next days would show on their own if her words had been true or not.

“Cease your attitude, Marie” Anya reprimanded her younger charge after a moment of silence, when Marie kept on taxing Ontari with an accusative glare.

Marie blinked slightly, as if shaking the anger from her mind, she did not quiet understand why she had been so angry to begin with. She poked at the dinner on her plate without much of an appetite, her appetite had been next to none existent for weeks now and all the food seemed to make her stomach queasy.

“Anya” Marie addressed the general, voice hesitant and cautious.

“What?” Anya asked, voice slightly kinder and waited for the girl to elaborate.

“I don’t feel well eating…” the girl explained, looking between her plate and the general with an unsure expression.

Anya frowned slightly, worry flashing over her features “It could be from the tonic still” she mused.

Marie’s expression looked almost pained. She had not spoken about the tonic with Anya yet and she knew she needed to apologize to her, but she was afraid of the general’s reaction. But she thought that being honest now might make Anya more merciful later, so she admitted in a low tone “I don’t think so…I have been feeling queasy for weeks…”

Anya sighed again, but she nodded “Laurel left some of the herbs for the tea to sooth your stomach, you can certainly continue to take it until your stomach settles on its own”. She remembered that Abby had listed nausea as one of the possible repercussions of Marie’s trauma, but they would need to keep close watch that the child would not develop a full-fledged eating disorder.

She ordered her younger charge to wait with her eating, busying herself with preparing the tea for the girl quickly.

Ontari looked highly uncomfortable when a guard opened the door and Risha slipped inside, immediately trotting over to Marie, lying her head on the child’s thigh.

“Hi, girl” Marie greeted the wolf, a soft smile on her features and she stroked over the wolf’s muzzle a few times, prompting a slight purr from the animal.

Anya snorted slightly under her breath as she placed the cup with steaming tea in front of Marie on the table, for all of the nightblood’s bravery it was almost ironic that the girl was still so obviously afraid of the wolf.

“How long does the foal have to grow until it can be ridden?” Marie asked the general as the woman sat down again, enthusiasm clear in her tone.

“Usually around five summers” Anya answered curtly and watched the girl’s expression fall.

Marie grumbled something unintelligible under her breath, that sounded like an awfully long time. Now that she thought about time, she wondered what date it was exactly.

“How long was I … gone from Polis?” the girl asked, voice hesitant but curious.

“Half a year” Anya answered promptly, voice heavy at the realization just how long her young charge had been subjected to Nia’s torture.

“Oh…” Marie exclaimed with what could pass as disappointment flashing through her grey eyes “I missed my birthday…” she added sullenly.

“Birthday?” Ontari inquired unfamiliar with phrase, but she kept suspicious eyes on the wolf.

“Yeah, I have birthday in spring, so I turned ten” Marie explained quickly. Her expression seemed far away for a few moments, as she remembered her birthdays when her mother had still been alive. She could have given them a specific date, but she knew that the survivors on earth had stopped using an exact calendar, only keeping track of the seasons. Although her parents had never had much possessions and celebrations were highly limited, her mother had usually saved a little of their rations to get her a small cake and a new book in exchange. She would have liked to make a little celebration of sorts with Lexa and Anya, but she guessed she could propose the same to them next year.

When Marie felt her stomach stopping to clench, she resumed eating, but Anya still noted how the girl mostly picked on her food, not eating very much.

Ontari frowned slightly, she did not understand why this was something worthy to mention “Is this some Skykru custom?”

Marie startled slightly, pulled from her thoughts “Yeah, you celebrate your birthday with your family and close friends, with a cake”

“Cake?” the nightblood echoed, confusion seemingly only increasing.

“Yeah” Marie nodded “A cake with candles on top and the birthday child blows them out and wishes something”.

Ontari’s frown deepened “Why would you put a candle on a cake and blow it out? There would be molten wax on the cake and why would you wish for something then?”

Marie blinked at the older girl, her brows knitted together at the questions which seemed so weird to her.

Anya internally had to agree with Ontari that this Skykru custom did seem rather weird. They did not keep track of their ages in such a way, age mattered little to them. They measured someone’s worth by their experience and surely not their age alone.

“They were little special colourful candles and they did not have that much wax. Or at least, I don’t remember that. And while blowing the candle out, you would wish something for your next year of life” Marie tried to explain.

Ontari still looked rather confused by this custom, but Marie added “And the others sing “Happy Birthday””.

The confusion on both of their faces increased obviously and Marie sighed under her breath, shaking her head muttering a “just forget it” and returning her sole attention to her plate of food.

Before Anya could say something, a handmaid knocked and asked if they could enter to prepare a bath. The general nodded her head, although she was surprised, as she had not asked for a bath to be prepared at all.

Lexa had told the handmaid to bring a special herbal remedy for Marie, intending to calm the girl’s anxiousness enough to sleep. Abby had explained that using herbs in a bath, which were already well known by their own grounders, and keeping up massaging the oil against the scars into the girl’s back afterwards should be enough to ease her to sleep, at least initially.

Marie visibly stiffened when a few handmaidens entered their quarters and Risha whined lowly when the girl’s fingers clenched in her fur.

Ontari frowned at Marie’s behaviour. The younger girl had not acted truly distrustfully of strangers without her memories and she would have assumed that Marie would feel securer now, but the opposite seemed to be the case.

The blonde girl relaxed again visibly, once the handmaidens had left and they were alone in their quarters again.

Anya had read over Lexa’s short message delivered by one of the handmaidens quickly. It sounded quite lavish and luxurious to provide a bath on a daily basis for Marie and she hoped it would truly work to sooth the girl to sleep. But it was certainly better than giving the girl another sleeping tonic.

She motioned Marie to follow her into the bathroom.

Marie hesitated in undressing remembering acutely that she still had to apologize to her mentor for sneaking around her.

Anya watched the girl shuffle her feat with a slight frown “You do not plan to bath fully dressed, do you?” she asked.

“No” Marie shook her head, blushing slightly, but she made no move to undress herself.

Anya leaned against the edge of the bathing tube, waiting for he girl to state what was obviously bothering her mind. She knew the girl would spit out what was on her mind, if she left her waiting for long enough.

“I am sorry…” the child said softly, eyes downcast and her expression screaming remorse loudly.

Anya patiently waited for her charge to continue her apology and she kept her expression open. She was sure to already know what the girl wanted to apologize for. Feeling guilty for sneaking around would be something truly matching to Marie’s character after all.

“I won’t lie to you again…” Marie assured and her eyes seemed to already tear up under the guilt.

Anya had a good incline to know just how upsetting the situation was to the child. “You better not” she reprimanded sharply and Marie winced visibly at the harshness of her tone. She was fairly positive the girl would lie to her again some time, but she hoped it would be in a less dire situation. The child needed to start using her head and start thinking rationally and responsibly.

Marie gulped and nodded frantically, but her voice was wavering strongly as she checked “You still love me…?”

Anya sighed under her breath, she had a feeling Lexa and she would be repeating this for uncountable numbers in their immediate future. “Yes, Marie, and that is certainly not going to change, no matter what kind of idiotic ideas you come up with next” she reassured the girl with a tight-lipped smile.

Marie enveloped the general exuberantly and smiled tearfully as she whispered “Love you…” into the general’s midriff.

“Love you too” Anya assured the child gruffly and gave her a little nudge “Off into the bath with you now” she ordered.

 

 

 

Chapter 180

Anya stepped out of the bathroom again, once she was sure that Marie was indeed in the bathing tube.

Ontari was sitting cross-legged on her bed, Risha standing next to the bed, wagging her tail at the girl, while Ontari tried to remain out of reach of the wolf.

“You do realize that Risha is as tame as a lamb to those who are connected to her human?” Anya asked, amusement colouring her tone and a smirk pulling at her lips.

Ontari’s gaze snapped to Anya immediately and she narrowed her eyes at the general, thinning her lips, but giving no verbal answer.

Anya huffed under her breath “Risha is wagging her tail at you” she explained “She is interested in you and she is persistent, she will not leave you alone”. The general could not hide the laughter from her tone completely. She herself had been very distant towards the wolf immediately after Marie’s disappearances, but fortunately Lexa had taken care of the animal. No matter how much she had doubted the rationality in letting Marie keep the wolf cub in the beginning, because she had been sure that such a predator would not be tamed, Risha had proven her wrong on all accounts. She would not advice anyone to try to hurt Lexa or Marie, because she was sure that wolf would intervene then, but otherwise the wolf truly would hurt no one. The animal was still young and playful, but she enjoyed cuddling as well and sometimes resembled a dog more strongly than an actual wolf.

She clicked her tongue, efficiently calling the wolf over to her and Risha obediently turned and trotted over to her, sitting down at her feet. Lexa had taken excellent care of the young animal and it had grown to be obedient to the point.

Ontari had watched the animal with slightly raised brows and she seemed confused by the animal’s obedience.

“Come here” Anya motioned Ontari over in a strict tone. In her opinion the nightblood had had long enough to get used to Risha on her own terms, but the girl had made not even a single move to get into actual contact with the wolf, so she would force her to do exactly that now.

Ontari gulped visibly and she hesitated for long moments, but when Anya’s lips thinned visibly at being blatantly ignored, she stood back up from the bed. Her steps were hesitant and small and she stopped a safe distance away from Anya and the wolf.

“Closer” Anya clarified sharply, rolling her eyes slightly at the girl’s behaviour.

When fear visibly flashed through the nightblood’s dark eyes, Anya sighed under her breath and put a hand on Risha’s body to gently keep the wolf from moving in the direction of Ontari.

“Another lesson” Anya said calmly and her brown were honest as she looked at Ontari, who seemed visibly confused. “It is alright to admit to fear something” she continued strongly and she silenced the nightblood with a simple gesture when the girl obviously wanted to disagree.

“To feel fear is perfectly acceptable” Anya said strongly, but was interrupted by Ontari.

The girl shook her head “Fear is weakness” she repeated a lesson, which had been drilled into her for long years the hands of the queen.

Anya shook her head, lips thinned slightly at the rude interruption, her voice was still firm but kind when she explained “Having fear does not make you weak. It is the way you decide to deal with fears which makes the difference between strength and weakness. Only a fool thinks to be completely without fear”.

Ontari’s dark eyes were fixed on the wolf now, as she slowly inched closer to the animal. It was obvious what the general wanted her to do, without her actually formulating it as an order.

“I have told the same thing to Lexa and Tris before, Ontari. If you are afraid of something, count to three in your head, focus on the feeling of fear, do not let them paralyze you and breathe, overcome your fear” Anya explained in an even tone.

It surprised her slightly to see Ontari close her eyes shortly, taking a deep breath and extending her hand towards Risha, when she opened them again. Anya had not expected for Ontari to heed her advice so quickly, but she was pleased to watch the girl doing so.

Risha behaved in an exemplary manner and stayed perfectly still as Ontari cautiously touched the wolf’s flank. Her fingers first only grazing over the soft fur cautiously, before she became slightly braver and truly stroked over her fur.

“Her fur is so soft” Ontari exclaimed, voice slightly awed and the slightest hint of a smile tilting the corners of her mouth upwards.

Anya nodded, amusement dancing through her brown eyes, and she let go of Risha, watching with a slight smile, as the wolf immediately leapt up into Ontari’s face.

The nightblood had been crouched down in front of the wolf and with a surprised gasp, the girl fell over, landing on her butt, as Risha sniffed at her face and started to lick at her only fractions of seconds later.

“Oh, stop, stop!” Ontari exclaimed, trying to shove the wolf away from her, but also trying not to anger the wolf and prompt her to bite at her. Laughter was slightly colouring her tone at the feeling of the wolf’s wet tongue in her face.

Anya clicked her tongue again, taking pity on the girl’s misery, and called Risha away from her.

Ontari wiped over her face with a slightly disgusted expression.

“See, Risha would rather lick you to death” Anya teased good-naturedly, as she petted the wolf’s muzzle.

Ontari snorted under her breath and she relented “Okay, she is not a vicious beast, but that was disgusting”. 

“Go and wash your face then” the general motioned towards the bathroom, a smirk still tugging at her lips and her voice tinted strongly with amusement.

Ontari immediately went around the general and Risha, her gaze definitely less suspicious as it rested on the wolf shortly.

“You should not sleep in the bath” Ontari chided the younger girl softly and Marie’s grey eyes snapped open, startled by her sudden appearance.

“We would not want you to drown” Ontari teased slightly, quickly washing her face with some clean water.

Marie sat up in the bath, sticking out her tongue at the nightblood in a truly childish gesture. Her expression sobered quickly though “You are staying, right?”

Ontari sighed, feeling slightly foolish for having reacted in such a way at all. “You have heard the general” she said easily.

Marie rolled her eyes “Her name is Anya…” and her voice seemed slightly annoyed before something different flashed through her grey eyes, enthusiasm enlightening her features “…and if you are her second now as well than that makes us…” she scrunched up her face deep in thought.

Ontari frowned, turning back around to face the younger girl and waiting to hear with what she had come up with. She did not know of any real relation between two seconds sharing a first though. In Azgeda a warrior rarely mentored more than one second at a time.

“…sisters!” Marie exclaimed excitedly as she turned around and kneeled in the bathing tube, hands keeping hold of the edge, facing Ontari and almost bouncing in the bathing tube.

Ontari blinked down at the younger girl, utterly speechless for long moments. She would have expected many things, but she had definitely not expected this. She could not remember, if she had had any siblings before she had been brought to the queen, but she had rarely mused over her lost family.

Marie seemed oblivious to Ontari’s overwhelmed reaction and started to chatter excitedly about the advantages of being something like sisters. It was obvious very quickly just how exited Marie seemed at the prospect of extending her definition of family to Ontari in addition.

Ontari’s mind was reeling, it was safe to say that she did care for Marie, but beside that she still had doubt anything else would develop, she would be perfectly fine with accepting the general as her mentor figure, she surely did not need anything else.

Anya frowned when she caught on to what Marie was speaking about so excitedly. She vividly remembered how important it had been to their charge to be allowed to label Lexa and she as a definite part of her family. The general was aware that the concept of siblings was mostly alien to Skykru. Octavia’s mother had been executed for birthing a second child and hiding said child. So, she could sympathise with Marie’s fascination with having a sibling, it would have undoubtedly been something the girl would have mused over before. Loosing her little family at such a young age and having been isolated for such a long time period at such a young age was bound to leave behind scars within the girl’s mind and wishing to now rebuild a secure family again for herself was obviously one of them. But Marie would need to understand that forcing such a development would not work, she highly doubted that Ontari would be feeling comfortable with the concept. Anya mused that the nightblood would probably be comfortable enough to acknowledge her connection with Marie, but that would not be enough in Marie’s opinion. Ontari’s continued silence was testament enough to the fact just how swamped the Ice Nation nightblood would be feeling right now. Internally Anya snorted lightly, they were on the brink of war and Marie had just regained her memories a few hours ago. It seemed so characteristic of their charge to focus on something as trivial as putting a label to her relationship with Ontari when so much was happening already.

She rapped on the door to the bathroom curtly, calling inside that Marie should be getting out of the water soon, which would have already cooled down considerably by now. Anya rolled her eyes, the bath had been intended to calm the girl down, but judging from her exited chatter Marie was as awake as she could have been. So much for the soothing effects of the herbs on a child so lively Anya thought almost sarcastically. When she noticed her own train of thought, the general shook her head, it was relieving to see Marie’s personality shine through again. It would be too much to hope that the girl had already recovered from the whole ordeal she had suffered through, her negative reaction to the presence of the handmaiden had been enough testament to that already, but hearing the childish excitement so strongly colouring the girl’s voice was heart-warming nonetheless. She still hoped that massaging the oil to help with the scarring into Marie’s back would be enough to sooth her again, so that she would fall asleep without much problem.

Ontari stepped out of the bathroom as soon as Marie had gotten out of the bathing tube safely and started to dry off. The nightblood’s expression was troubled and it was obvious the conversation had upset her, probably deeper than she would admit out loud.

Anya mutely watched the nightblood girl walk over to her bed apparently deep in thought, she would not force her to speak her mind and she doubted the girl would offer anything now. She was proven correct, when Ontari quickly shrugged out of the light armour she had still been wearing and into the soft shirt and trousers she wore to bed and laid down without a word, or in fact not even once looking in the direction of the general.

A few moments later Marie came out of the bathroom, feet bare and a towel slung around her body. The uncertainty already edged deeply into her features pulled at Anya’s heart and the general would have given everything to have the ability to simply erase the girl’s fears from her mind and take them over herself.

Anya mutely forced a smile on her own face and motioned Marie over to her bed. The girl lied down without further prompting and discarded the towel quickly.

Marie peeked over her shoulder, body slightly quivering and grey eyes filled with uncertainty. The enthusiasm of before obviously forgotten now.

Anya’s smile became tight-lipped as she warmed some of the oil between her palms, before carefully distributing the strongly smelling substance on the child’s back. After only a few strokes of her hands Marie’s body visibly relaxed and her eyes fell shut moments later.

Anya watched her charge’s features losing their worried frown finally when sleep finally overtook Marie’s mind. She continued her gentle administration for some time wanting to make sure that Marie was truly deeply asleep and she tried to bite her tongue, when Marie’s eyes snapped open immediately as she stood from the bed, to reign in the sigh wanting to escape her lips.

“You need to sleep” Anya said, voice forcefully gentle and brown eyes kind. She was aware of Ontari watching her very move, but the nightblood kept silent in her observations.

Marie sucked in a harsh breath and her hands clenched to fists when her breathing quickened. The girl’s eyes flashed with varying emotions, too quickly for Anya to be able to put a name on them, but indecision remained. It was clear the girl was afraid to fall asleep and had obviously been fighting her body strongly.

Anya did not know if offering to share her bed with her charge would help or actually worsen her state now, so she waited patiently for Marie to formulate what she wished to ask.

“Can you read to me?” the child’s voice seemed small and a slight blush coloured her cheeks at having to ask and her own inability to face her fears.

Anya nodded with a soft expression. Lexa had done so many times in the past when Marie had had problems falling asleep and it had usually helped to sooth the child to sleep just fine.

While Anya stood up to retrieve a book, Marie quickly shuffled on her own sleeping attire. Marie laid down again on the far edge of her bed, leaving enough room for Anya to lie down beside her.

When the general returned and sat down on the chair beside the bed, Marie visibly frowned and although she did not voice her plea, shuffling around with the furs had obviously been sign enough for Anya. The general huffed under her breath once and finally relented with Marie’s unspoken wish.

Ontari watched the proceedings with a mixture of amusement and an emotion she could note quiet name. The general and the blonde girl looked so oddly familiar with each other and just so deeply connected that it was painfully obvious just why Marie regarded the strict woman as part of her family now. Ontari had already been witness to the commander handling the blonde Sky girl just as gently, when Marie had broken down during the lesson with the other novitiates discussing the Mountain. It was a weird concept in her mind to watch both women, both of them undoubtedly skilled and powerful warriors, ruthless and the very epitome of power outside of their quarters, being so clearly wrapped around Marie’s little finger and treating her with the gentleness of a mother. The queen had always instilled within her mind that being gentle with anyone, even your own mount, was a weakness and simply an impossible contrast to the strength she had always thrived to acquire. But she would not think that the commander’s or the general’s strength were diminished even the slightest bit by caring for Marie.

Marie’s smile was grateful when she immediately cuddled up to the general’s midriff and she looked up at the woman, grey eyes expectant to start reading, in silence.

Anya rolled her eyes mutely at the girl’s antics and started to read the book to Marie in an even tone. She was glad Lexa had thought of sending her a few books after Marie’s return just in case their charge wanted to read something solely for her amusement.

It seemed to take forever for Marie’s eyes to start to drop. Anya observed the girl shaking herself awake again a few times and the first two times she had interrupted her reading and chided the girl, only for Marie to start arguing about not wanting to sleep and being more awake again as an effect. So, Anya had stopped pointing it out to Marie and hoped that the girl would sooner or later have to fall asleep and lose the fight against her own body.

When Marie finally had fallen asleep, her breathing evened out and regular, Anya felt the girl’s hands still fisted into her shirt and she sighed under her breath. There was no way she could loosen Marie’s hands without waking her in the process. The position she was trapped in was anything but comfortable though. Anya half sat, half lied propped up against the headboard of the bed and Risha had hopped on the bed some time ago, cuddling to Marie’s back, offering even less space of the bed.

Anya glanced over to Ontari but it seemed the nightblood had already drifted off to sleep as well. She carefully turned and placed the book on the chair standing next to the bed. When she looked down at Marie’s sleeping form, she sighed, even in sleep their charge’s features looked troubled still. Softly Anya let her glide over the girl’s hair, caressing her cheek lightly and watched the troubled frown drain from her features. She had very little hope of catching much sleep herself in this way and she highly doubted that Marie’s sleep would remain untroubled by nightmares for long.

She mused if it would be more beneficial for Ontari to assign her quarters of her own again, but discarded the idea immediately again. The nightblood would probably not complain about losing some sleep. Her reaction to the news of Marie regaining her memories had been clear enough to Anya to relay what the nightblood had truly feared would happen. Ontari was obviously afraid of being rejected now that she thought her own purpose to Anya had run dry. The girl probably did not wish to be alone either. It was a weird thought to realize that although Ontari and Marie were so visibly different and even contrasting to each other, but at the same time Ontari was, just as Marie was, a troubled girl, troubled by her own demons, but troubled nonetheless.

Anya closed her eyes, trying to stop her own thoughts from keeping her awake, hoping to catch at least a little rest before Marie undoubtedly would wake again soon enough. She dearly hoped she was not boiling the ocean by having taken over Ontari’s care in addition.

 

 

 

 

Chapter 19: Chapter 181 - 190

Chapter Text

Chapter 181

To Anya it seemed as if the night just did not wish to pass. She had already spent the complete previous day at Marie’s bedside, caring for the girl as she rode out the poisoning effects of the sleeping tonic and she was bone deep exhausted.

But every time Anya closed her eyes and felt her own mind get heavy as sleep started to overtake it and she stopped caressing the child’s hair, Marie immediately began to stir. So, Anya was snapped awake time and time again.

Anya was able to sooth her charge back into deeper untroubled sleep by a few soft touches and whispered words, stopping the girl’s nightmares efficiently before they could take hold of her at all. The positive effect was that Ontari was able to sleep undisturbed, but Anya highly doubted she would be able to provide Marie support of this kind for long, there was only a limited time she could function without any sleep before her body demanded rest.

When soft sunlight finally appeared through the curtains, Anya sighed deeply in relieve. Her head was throbbing with a consistent ache, and her whole body felt tense and pained from having stayed in such an uncomfortable position for so long. She knew her temper would be rather short if she did not manage to calm herself a little, she dearly needed a few moments for herself, without either of the girls.

She had noticed during the long hours of the night that Marie’s terrors seemed to only increase as the candles had burnt down and darkness ascended through their quarters. So, besides the already existing problems it was probable that the girl had developed a fear of darkness additionally.

Her backbone gave a few loud cracks as Anya slid out of the bed, trying to let Marie rest for a few moments longer, and she bit back a string of swears.

When she felt more than actually saw Ontari’s dark eyes watching her, Anya ordered her to stand up and start in the bathroom, voice curt and clipped. The nightblood’s expression looked almost pitying as she mutely inclined her head and left without a word.

Anya quickly stepped out of their quarters, asking to have a bath prepared for herself and inquiring if Lexa had already left her quarters, she dearly hoped she had not. A little bit of luck seemed to be on her side when the answer was positive and she send one of the guards to rely to the commander that both her charges would be joining her for breakfast.

The moment the general closed the door to their quarters, was when Marie jolted awake. Anya stopped in her tracks when she noticed Marie’s whole frame tensing up, although the child’s eyes were still closed.

Marie did not know what had woken her up and she felt her heartrate picking up immediately. The mattress beside herself was still warm and her thoughts instantly jumped to having been forced to share the queen’s bed. A slight frown appeared on her features, her body did not hurt and her stomach was not clenched in disgust. But even through her closed eyelids Marie sensed light in the room, so she could impossibly be back in the room she had shared with Ontari in the queen’s fortress. The lights had always given out during the night and there had been no windows in the small room, so they always woke in complete darkness until a warrior collected them for training.

Her breathing quickened slightly when she realized that she was absolutely clueless as to where exactly she was at the moment. She startled strongly when something heavy moved on the mattress beside her and what felt like a wet muzzle pressed under one of her hands.

Marie’s grey eyes almost shot open now, as the memories of the last few days rushed back to the forefront of her mind and she felt most of the tension drain from her body. A soft smile enlightened her features as she let her fingers move through Risha’s soft fur. “Hi, girl” she cooed at the wolf in greeting and giggled slightly when Risha licked at her fingers, wagging her tail.

Anya’s frown disappeared and an exhausted smile tilted the corners of her mouth upwards as she watched Marie reconnect with her wolf. The child looked so carefree and relaxed in this moment that it was hard to believe just how deeply troubled she had been during the night. At least only she seemed to be in discomfort now and the girl was not cranky in addition, right now Anya would work with small mercies.

The smile brightening up Marie’s face when her gaze turned to Anya and her tentative “You stayed beside me the whole night?” was acknowledgement enough for her efforts.

When Marie stood from the bed and tapped over to Anya, she immediately hugged the woman’s midriff in a thankful gesture.

“How are you feeling?” Anya asked her charge, brown eyes clearly showing just how touched she was by the girl’s antics.

“Rested” Marie replied softly with an almost sheepish expression. She knew that she was the sole cause of the dark circles of exhaustion forming under Anya’s eyes. She felt guilty and weak for causing her mentor such grief.

“I am not weak” Marie whispered out loud to herself, trying in vain to quieten the queen’s voice echoing through her mind.

Anya put her hands on the child’s shoulders and squeezed them in reassurance “You are not weak” she said in a grave voice.

Marie stopped repeating her mantra after a few moments and a slight blush dusted over her cheeks.

“It is alright” Anya intoned calmly, squeezing the girl’s shoulders once more. She waited for a moment until she asked “You do not feel well in darkness any longer?” Now that she thought about it, she remembered that even without her memories the girl’s nightmares had been worse in the last hours of the night only after the candles had burnt down.

Marie nodded although reluctance to admit to yet another weakness was evident within her features. She could not remember ever being so afraid of something trivial like darkness before and she had no idea why she was afraid of it now or how she could overcome it again.

Anya inclined her head “I will instruct the handmaiden to light new candles every evening which should last through the complete night”. It sounded to be the most sensible and easiest solution, she was not sure it would truly help, but it was an easy measure. She would definitely not try to put Marie to sleep in her smaller bed again in the coming night, the closeness had obviously helped and her own bed was larger and much more comfortable to share.

Marie nodded with a visibly grateful expression, but she stepped back from Anya abruptly when there was a knock on the door. She frowned in confusion when breakfast was only delivered for a single person.

“Ontari and you are going to join Lexa for breakfast” Anya explained.

Marie inclined her head, a slight frown still in place, internally wondering why Anya was sending them away at all. But with the handmaiden in the rooms with them, she did not speak up, but rather turned from Anya and changed her clothing as quickly as possible.

The general watched the girls leave together a few moments later, but she did not miss the almost sullen look Marie darted her way before the door.

Ontari had also picked up on the younger girl’s mood and she commented in an easy tone “The general must not have slept much last night. I did not hear you even once”.

Marie frowned slightly and Ontari sighed when she noted guilt flashing through her grey eyes, she had not meant to make her feel guilty in addition. But the guards in front of the commander’s quarters were already opening the doors for them, before Ontari could add anything further.

While Marie had appeared a little tense in the hall, she smiled slightly at Lexa once they entered.

The commander was still dressed in dark trousers and a simple black shirt, the signs of her station, beside the braids already woven into her brown mane, still absent. Lexa had been surprised to receive the short message from Anya, it was Clarke who had guessed that the general would probably simply wish for a few minutes in private. The blonde healer had predicted that the night would have been hard for Marie and her former mentor. Although Lexa dearly treasured the few sparse moments of solitude, she was able to share with Clarke throughout the day, she was gladly willing to include Marie in them. She was not entirely convinced about Ontari’s inclusion in them, but she could fathom why Anya had send the nightblood along.

A smile ghosted over Lexa’s lips as she took in Marie’s expression. It was obvious easily that the girl was still not feeling entirely secure again, but she was much more recognizable. Her expression turned sober when she inclined her head towards Ontari and motioned both to sit down.

Risha, who had accompanied the girl, went from Marie’s side to Lexa as well, nudging at the commander’s leg in greeting, until the woman caressed her muzzle.

Marie’s smile froze visibly when she noticed Ontari tensing slightly next to her, when Clarke stepped out of the bathroom.

Clarke did not seem affected by the negative reaction from both of the younger girls and sat down next to Lexa with a carefree smile.

Lexa watched Marie’s antics for a few moments in silence and the frown edged into her features turned into a glare in Ontari’s direction. Marie’s grey eyes kept on darting between Clarke and the nightblood girl, clearly still assessing her reaction to Clarke and mimicking her behaviour.

It took Ontari another few moments to notice the commander’s glares and she blinked in confusion until the woman made a motioning nod towards Marie a moment later. Ontari relaxed with a rather loud exhale when she finally understood what seemed to be the problem.

“Wanheda” she respectfully greeted the blonde woman.

Clarke’s smile faltered visibly but her voice was still kind “Please, just call me Clarke” she requested.

The breakfast continued in a rather strained silence. Both Clarke and Lexa tried to make a few attempts at conversation, but neither of them was sure on how to deal with Marie, who was uncharacteristically quiet, and Ontari’s presence did not help one bit.

Marie was confused by Clarke’s presence. The blonde woman looked oddly at home next to the commander and although they did not outright touch each other, they sat awfully close, barely any space left between them. She remembered speaking about Lexa’s feelings for Clarke with the commander and how weirdly they had acted around each other. She had been sure that Clarke would be able to forgive Lexa for the Mountain and it seemed she had. She did not understand the surge of jealousy coursing through her veins.

“Have you settled on a name for your foal?” Lex asked, still trying to engage her charge in a conversation which consisted of more than two words as an answer.

Marie shook her head, pulled from her thoughts for now. “I want to see her again” she proclaimed “I want her to have a fitting name”.

Lexa inclined her head with a slight smile “You may spend some time at the stables later”.

“Anya said she cannot be ridden for around five years” Marie repeated, the same disappointment colouring her tone.

Lexa nodded “But you shall have excess to another horse. If there is a horse fitting for you within the convey expected to come from the Plain Riders in the next days, you shall have one of those.”

Ontari listened to the conversation, feeling surprised at the generosity of the offer. The Plain Riders were known for breeding the best and most loyal war horses among the clans, but Marie would probably not know that.

“I’ll get another horse?” Marie checked, new enthusiasm shining in her grey eyes.

“A warrior needs more than one mount” Lexa explained good-naturedly with a slight smirk. Her words were not entirely true. High ranking warriors surely had more than one horse in their possession, but the average warrior had only one horse, if they owned one at all that is. But as the commander’s second it was not unreasonable for Marie to have two later as well. 

Clarke looked at the brunette with fond amusement dancing within her blue eyes and her “Of course that sounds very reasonable” was laced with slight sarcasm. She may be new to the culture of the grounders, but it was obvious that Lexa simply wished to spoil her charge.

Lexa shot Clarke a weak glare, but Marie did not seem to have picked up on that.

“And that horse will be old enough to be ridden?” Marie checked. Her mind was obviously occupied completely with the prospect of another horse.

“Of course” Lexa inclined her head in agreement.

“And when are they arriving?” Marie immediately asked another question.

The corners of Lexa’s lips tilted up with a smile at being confronted with Marie’s eager chirpiness again, the girl’s grey eyes shining with joy. But there was no clear answer to that. The convey could be arriving today but it could also take them up to another week to reach the capitol.

“They are expected to arrive within a week” Lexa patiently answered Marie’s question, although she had already given the answer several moments ago.

“Will there be spotted horses among them?” Marie asked next, obviously still brimming with questions.

Lexa frowned slightly, she did not understand why that would be important, neither had she any idea about the physical appearance of the horses. The horses were chosen by their strength and not their looks.

“I doubt the commander would know how they look like” Ontari interjected, surprising Lexa by actually participating in the conversation.

“Why not?” Marie asked her brows knitted together.

“A horse has to be loyal and strong, not pretty” Ontari retorted with a raised brow.

Marie frowned at the answer, but she inclined her head obviously at least convinced by the logic of the statement.

Lexa was surprised to see that Ontari seemed to be very well acquittanced to the girl’s way of thinking. “How do you find the training with Anya?” she enquired curiously. She doubted Ontari would have been faced with a training style like Anya’s in the past.

“Well…” Ontari halted, obviously thinking her words through carefully.

Lexa waited patiently for the nightblood to state her mind and she opened her mouth to tell her that she could speak freely within her quarters without the fear of retribution for having her own opinion, but Marie beat her to it.

“You don’t like her” Marie accused, grey eyes stormy and a frown edged into her features.

“I have not said that…” Ontari defended herself quickly and Lexa sensed that this discussion at least partly had already taken place before between the two girls.

“No, but you said…” the girl made quoting motions with her hands “…that you do not have to “like” her as your mentor…”.

Ontari rolled her eyes and impatience was evident in her dark eyes.

“Ontari is correct, Marie” Lexa addressed the girl, before the nightblood girl could say anything else “A first and a second do not need to share a bond of friendship, but it usually develops after some time”.

“Not in Azgeda…” Ontari interjected, voice careful and expression clearly guarded.

“You do not need to hold back in your statements, Ontari” Lexa reminded the younger nightblood again in a calm and friendly tone.

“How is it in Azgeda?” Marie asked, ignoring Lexa’s interjection in the conversation and turning her full attention to the dark-haired girl.

Ontari snorted slightly under her breath “I already told you that a first kills an unworthy second”.

Clarke looked quite horrified to hear that.

“I can guarantee you that this won’t happen” Lexa admonished both girls likewise.

Ontari inclined her head in silent acknowledgement “I find the general’s teachings to be quite…” she paused searching for the best fitting word to answer the commander’s original inquiry “…unique” the nightblood girl settled on finally.

Fond amusement danced through Lexa’s green eyes and the corners of her lips tilted upwards in a slight smile as she nodded her agreement “Anya is certainly inventive, but you shall see that all her lessons serve one purpose or another”.

Ontari raised a doubtful brow at that and her comment sounded almost sarcastic “I highly doubt that. Some seem to only aim to humiliate me…”

Lexa seemed to hide her smirk behind her cup for a second before she shook her head “It certainly may appear that way from time to time. But accepting that questioning her intentions is useless and simply trusting in Anya is one of the first and most important lessons” she explained. She could remember quite a lot of events where she herself had highly doubted that general’s sanity and feared the woman was secretly out to discretely kill her. Rather a lot of her so-called lessons seemed to only serve as Anya’s personal source of amusement and it had taken Lexa several years to recognize that all of Anya’s lessons truly had ulterior motives and quite a lot of them had served her well.

Marie frowned, she did not truly understand what they both meant, she had not found any of Anya’s lessons weird or questionable so far. The general was impatient at times, but besides that they seemed alright to her.

Lexa tried to explain to Ontari the purpose of being assigned to a first as a nightblood, after the girl had very tentatively asked after the reason.

Marie listened to the conversation loosely, not truly interested and caressed Risha’s muzzle when the wolf returned to her side. Anya had not made her another tea to settle her stomach and she already felt her stomach coiling again uncomfortably after having eaten a few bites.

When Marie suddenly dashed up from her seat and hurried to the bathroom her complexion had already turned slightly greenish.

“Let me” Clarke said to Lexa when the commander made to stand and follow her charge. She had noticed Marie’s almost wary reaction to her and through the closeness she now had to Lexa it would be important that the girl felt at least comfortable in her presence.

 

 

Chapter 182

Marie was sitting in front of the toilet on the floor, shaking visibly and dry heaving after she had already expelled the content of her stomach a few moments ago.

Her expression soured visibly when she noticed that it was Clarke who had followed her and not Lexa or Ontari.

Clarke kept an easy smile on her face although she noticed the girl’s reaction “Do you still feel sick?” she inquired in a soothing tone.

Marie nodded reluctantly, her stomach still rolled but there was nothing left in it to vomit.

“You have been feeling sick for some time now, haven’t you?” Clarke asked, carefully putting a hand on Marie’s forehead to feel her temperature. The child flinched visibly at her proximity but Clarke ignored her reaction.

Marie nodded again in consent, but her grey eyes looked suspiciously towards Clarke.

The blonde healer sighed “I am not going to hurt you, Marie, I just want to help you” she promised.

“So, said your mother…” Marie grumbled back. She remembered how Abby had just injected her with a narcotic without even saying anything. She internally shuddered at what the woman might have done during the time she had been out. She remembered the echoing pain of the examination, so she could guess fine enough what had happened. She hated the thought of having been exposed like that against her will.

Clarke sighed under her breath and crouched down next to Marie, putting a hand on the girl’s back and rubbing it in a soothing motion “My mother thought that it would have been easier for you this way. She did not mean to harm you, Marie, neither do I” she repeated honestly.

Marie accepted her words with a slight nod, before she turned back to the toilet. She still felt Clarke’s hand drawing circles on her back and she felt grateful for her support. She felt miserable “Why do I always feel sick?” she asked in a whining tone.

“Always?” Clarke checked and when Marie nodded her head in agreement, she asked “For how long has this happened?”

Marie shrugged her shoulders slightly “Not sure … for a few weeks … I think” she answered.

Clarke frowned, she knew that elevated levels of stress and anxiety could manifest themselves in a very real physical problem and she guessed that Marie was either developing an eating disorder or her problems with her stomach only stemmed from the trauma she had suffered and would ease once she would feel safe again.

“Anya had a tea that helped” Marie said after a few moments of silence.

Clarke nodded, she knew of the tea usually given to patients by the healers of Polis to settle an upset stomach and she doubted it would have been a special brew. She had some of the needed herbs stored in her bag in her room.

Lexa hovered inside of the opened door when Clarke stood up quickly, ordering Marie to stay put in a calm tone. She let her hand rest on the commander’s hip for a moment, giving her a soft smile and a quick peck on the lips.

Marie had watched the exchange with a scowl in place, she felt her stomach rolling even more at the sight.

Lexa gave Marie a silent reassuring smile before she returned to Ontari. Risha sat in front of the nightblood wagging her tail at the girl and looking at a piece of fruit in her hand. The nightblood looked a weird mixture between confused what the animal wanted and freaked out that she was now the target of Risha’s attention.

Risha’s ears only shortly flicked when Clarke bustled through the room to retrieve the herbs for the tea, hot water and a cup and returned to keep Marie company in the bathroom until the younger girl felt better.

Amusement danced through Lexa’s eyes as she watched Ontari backing away from Risha. The nightblood had unknowingly chosen the one and only fruit Risha seemed to not be able to get enough off and no matter how often Lexa had scolded the wolf for begging for it, it was no use.

She had come to a sort of compromise with the wolf. If Risha remained sitting on the ground and patiently waited until she was finished with her meal, she would share the fruit with the wolf, but Ontari would not know that of course.

“She is waiting for you to give her her share” Lexa explained with a slight smirk when Ontari’s brows scrunched up in confusion.

“These are Risha’s favourite, she always gets a piece when I have them” the commander added after a beat of silence.

Ontari frowned and she nodded with a cautious expression, her dark eyes flicking between the wolf and the remaining fruit in her hand. She was still not entirely convinced of the wolf’s goodwill and did not wish to offend the animal. She thought wolves were only eating meat though.

“Do I just toss it to her?” Ontari asked after a moment. The wolf had remained a reasonable distance away from her, but her ice blue eyes remained transfixed on the fruit in her fingers and she felt it unnerving.

Lexa inclined her head “She can take it from your fingers as well” she said trying to hide her rising amusement at the look of pure horror crossing Ontari’s dark eyes.

Ontari contemplated just tossing the fruit at the wolf, but she was keenly aware of the commander watching her every move and she did not wish to show just how afraid she was of the wolf. She had seen the previous evening that her fear was not warranted at all, but she could not shake it off.

She tried to pull up a brave front and carefully extended the piece of fruit towards the wolf, trying to keep it only in the very tips of her finger in hopes to minimize the risk of being bitten. To her utter surprise the wolf seemed extremely cautious of her fingers and she did not even feel them graze her skin at all as Risha carefully took the fruit from her fingers.

A slight smile spread over her lips, feeling irrationally proud with herself, while Risha munched on the fruit happily. Her smile froze somewhat when she noticed how Lexa watched her with amusement in her eyes.

Ontari straightened herself and whipped the rest of the smile from her features looking at a wall of the room in stead of in the commander’s direction.

Lexa sighed at the girl’s reaction and her voice was inquiring as she said “Why do you think you are here?”

Ontari narrowed her eyes at the woman with a slight frown “Because the general sent me here with Marie” she answered evenly.

The commander sighed under her breath as she inclined her head “Simply put, yes. But you think that this time is solely beneficial to Marie?”

Ontari’s lips thinned visibly “I would not see another purpose” she bit back, although she had already been privy to glimpses of the commander hidden beneath her title.

Lexa shook her head in the negative “Consequently, you would regard Anya’s motivation for mentoring you as solely being Marie additionally?”

Ontari remained resolutely silent. She knew why Marie had brought up her lack of a personal connection to the general again. The girl seemed to have gotten it stuck in her mind that she was a part of her “family” now, but that would also mean that she would need to get closer to the commander and that was something she found highly unlikely. She was still in Polis with the purpose to rise as the next commander, she knew better now than to assume that she was exactly prepared well enough for that. But she did not need a connection to the commander, neither to the other novitiates.

“The other novitiates do not have a first” Ontari commented into the silence after long moments. The commander’s ability to simple wait out whoever sat opposite of her in a perfectly calm demeanour, still unnerved her.

Lexa inclined her head in agreement “True. But I have found the experiences being Anya’s second provided me with unique and I am still evaluating candidates to mentor the older nightbloods as well. Being a true leader is about more than just strength”

Ontari rolled her eyes “Yeah, yeah, I know. Wisdom and compassion…”

“I would cease that attitude in your position” Lexa warned the younger nightblood lightly, but her eyes had gotten unyielding. “Do you regard me as weak?” the commander challenged her student after a moment.

Ontari shook her head quickly and her dark eyes were honest. She would not dare to label the commander as weak. In all honesty the commander had proven to be beyond as what she would have defined as strength, she was simply much more than brute strength. If she compared what Nia had been like as a leader with Lexa as the commander, the contrast could not have been much grander. When it became clear that the commander was obviously not satisfied with a simple non-verbal answer Ontari said “Certainly not, although your actions are not always compliant with the definition of strength that I have been taught”. She waited with an almost baited breath for the woman’s reaction, she knew that her words might be taken as an insult.

Lexa crossed her legs over each other taking up a relaxed posture. Ontari seemed to be well aware that she was towing a line with her words, but Lexa wished for the younger girl to have the possibility to speak completely freely within her quarters. She inclined her head in agreement “You may state your mind without fear of retribution, Ontari” she informed the Ice Nation nightblood in a kind tone, before her expression turned inquiringly “In which aspects does what I do contrast to your views of strengths?”

Ontari seemed to contemplate her answer for a few moments and Lexa patiently waited, before the younger nightblood spoke up again. Ontari’s voice sounded thoughtful and there seemed to be confusion within her eyes as she mused “You are … gentle at times … but I do not think that diminished your strength. I have seen both you and Anya handle Marie with care and gentleness, but it does not make you weak.” Her dark eyes shortly travelled to the door of the bathroom, before she continued “You listen to complaints of your citizens and you actually try to better their lives”. It was obvious that the girl was still slightly astounded by this.

Lexa inclined her head in agreement, but she remained silent, it seemed as if Ontari had not quiet yet articulated all her thoughts on the matter.

“You have made allies out of the clans” Ontari added. Before coming to Polis, she had been convinced that the coalition was a bad thing and only put into place by the Trikru commander to exploit all the other clans and boost her own clan, but she knew better now. It was reasonable that constant wars were weakening all of them and did not make it possible for the clans to develop into something better.

“You do not plan to erase all of Ice Nation…” she mused. Ontari was well aware that Nia had given more than enough reasons to Lexa to want to destroy the complete clan and yet the commander had not ordered their armies into the north yet. She knew that they were preparing for an outright war, but its goal seemed to be to dethrone Nia and not to destroy each and every village on their path.

Lexa shook her head “No, I certainly do not. What would you decide in my stead?” she questioned in a calm tone.

Ontari did not seem to take long to chose an answer, but Lexa noticed how her eyes shortly flitted back to the bathroom door and it internally astounded her just how great of an impact Marie obviously had on the younger nightblood girl. “Kill them all” she answered darkly and the anger was obvious in her features.

Lexa could even understand to some extent just how personally betrayed the younger nightblood must be feeling by Nia. She had been practically raised by the woman and no matter how vile she would have been to Ontari, as she grew up, Nia would have been her only role model and the girl would have never questioned any of the queen’s teachings.

She minutely entertained the idea of just how differently everything might have come to pass, without Marie inside of the picture. Roan would have probably never offered her any information regarding Ontari’s existence. Who knew if the younger nightblood girl might have even succeeded in her plan to assassinate the conclave. Marie had been the one to timidly propose to have Ontari taught in Polis and not simply executed. Anya would certainly have never returned to her side without Marie’s presence as well. And there was no doubt in her mind that the Ice Nation nightblood would have even contemplated to cooperate within Polis without Marie’s unbiased kindness. Lexa shook her head, trying to diffuse this train of thought from her mind, it was entirely possible that her complete reign would have already fallen by now. But there was no sense in contemplating the “what if’s”, she could only be grateful that everything had plaid out in the way it had. Marie would recover from Nia’s torture as well, she was sure of that.

“I can sympathise with your thirst for revenge” Lexa admitted, darkness flitting through her green eyes and her features setting into harsh lines “But it should be directed towards Nia and not the entirety of Azgeda” she cautioned, voice calmer again minutely.

Ontari inclined her head thoughtfully, slight surprise flashing over her features.

Before the younger nightblood could say anything else, the door to the bathroom opened again and Marie returned again, keeping a visible distance to Clarke. A cup was clutched inside her hands and her complexion still had a slightly greenish tint to it.

Lexa gave the young girl a sympathetic smile and Marie plopped down beside the commander on the couch, leaning against her taller frame immediately. With a light sigh under her breath, Lexa put an arm around Marie’s smaller body, giving her a gentle squeeze. She bandied a silent look with Clarke and her brows creased slightly at finding the blonde’s features troubled. It seemed Clarke’s intentions to get closer to her young charge had not been as fruitful as she had hoped.

Ontari watched the younger girl’s antics with the hint of a frown. She was slightly confused that Marie now openly sought out Lexa’s proximity in such a needy fashion and it was obvious that the blonde girl was feeling content in the exact spot she was in now. She did not understand the slight flare of jealousy inside the pit of her stomach at the sight, or why she had thought that she could reassure Marie in Lexa’s stead.

She noted how Marie’s grey eyes glared at Clarke when the woman leaned down and placed a soft farewell kiss on the commander’s lips, excusing herself to join the other healers on their rounds. But the girl’s features looked like incarnated innocence once Clarke had left the room and Lexa’s attention returned to Marie.

“Do you wish to try eat something else?” Lexa asked her young charge in a soft tone, offering one of the honey cakes the girl enjoyed to her.

Marie took the offered cake with a slight smile. Now that her stomach had settled, she could feel how empty it was and she took a few ginger bites of the cake, waiting for her body to react to her intake, before she devoured the whole thing a few moments later.

Marie frowned slightly when she remembered that she had not even liked sweetened tea before she had regained her memories, but now the cakes tasted absolutely divine again and Clarke had added a rather huge amount of honey to her tea as well. The first sips of the bitter brew had left her coughing and pulling a face at the disgusting taste.

Lexa addressed the girl in a soft tone pulling her from her thoughts, asking if she remembered what had triggered her panic attack the previous day.

Marie brows knitted together as she tried to recall her exact thoughts and her breathing quickened immediately once she did and she felt goose bumps raise on her arms, as the queen’s words started to shrilly resonate through the forefront of her mind again.

“Marie” Lexa let go of the girl and gently turned her around to sit facing to her. She recognized the signs of another panic attack coming up, now that Abby had briefed Clarke on them via their radio. She needed to remind the girl that she was just being caught up in a memory and that she was safe, grounding her mind to the presence and calling it out of the past.

Marie felt someone’s hands on her shoulders and her body stiffened, she was waiting for the slap to land on her cheek and she was confused why nothing seemed to happen. The queen’s voice sounded loudly through her mind, but on the edge of her periphery she noticed another voice.

When it looked as if her attempts to get Marie’s attention had all failed, Lexa quickly turned the girl around again, firmly pulling her against her chest and encircling her inside of her arms. The girl was fighting against her hold weakly, but she was no match against her strength.

Ontari watched the proceedings with bewilderment. She was unsure if Marie would need to see a healer. She had not been a witness to the blonde’s last panic attack and the sight honestly frightened her.

Marie tried to focus on the voice which seemed to battle within her mind against the queen’s words, she heard another rhythmic sound now and the smell evading her mind was oddly familiar and soothing. It did not match with her memory any longer and she tried to focus her attention on the things which seemed confusing.

It seemed to take a long time until she could actually hear the words the other voice kept on whispering “Focus on me, Marie, focus on my breathing and focus on my heartbeat”. She felt that her hand was pressed against someone else’s stomach and she could feel it rising and falling beneath her hand. The queen would have never touched her in such a fashion, her touches had been different. “Match your breathing to mine…in…and out….in….and out…” the voice continued and Marie tried to follow its direction, very slowly she realized that it was Lexa speaking to her and she recognized the uniquely earthy smell of the woman enveloping her completely.

Although she still felt slightly shaken, Marie baked away from Lexa a little bit “I am fine” she insisted after a short moment, but her voice sounded wavering and anything but convincing.

Lexa sighed a breath of relieve. Marie’s panic attack had been stopped way earlier than the previous day and she had been able to actually calm her down before she could lose herself completely. She tightened her arms around Marie slightly and said with another sigh “I would say it is safe to assume that thinking about Nia triggers your attacks” the commander’s tone had been cautious and she watched Marie’s features for any signs of another panic attack.

Marie nodded, her expression crest fallen and burrowing deeply against Lexa’s frame.

“You will learn how to deal with them” Lexa assured the girl. It was obvious, they would require Abby’s assistance once again, the woman would know best on how to teach Marie the techniques she needed to know. Anya, Ontari and she would need to learn them in addition to be able to help Marie, should the girl not be able to ground herself on her own.

 

 

Chapter 183

The conclave had been all cheer and smiles when they heard that Marie had regained her complete memories and they welcomed her back heartedly.

While Marie was crowded by most of the conclave, Ontari hung back and observed how Kato was the only one who did not seem to share the full extent of joy of the other novitiates.

Lexa watched from her throne with a soft smile ghosting around the corners of her lips how the novitiates expressed their joy much more openly and genuinely than she had expected. It was obvious just how much most of them were happy to see Marie returned.

The commander motioned Kato over to her and asked the nightblood boy came over obediently. “You do not seem pleased to see Marie return” Lexa commented, expression blank and her tone even.

Kato glanced up at his commander with a slight frown and his expression turned defensive “She could be loyal to Azgeda now” he mused in an almost sullen tone.

Aden, who had also stood back slightly, to give the younger ones more space with Marie and Risha, rolled his eyes.

Lexa spotted the blonde boy’s reaction and was sure that this argument had already been proposed by Kato to the other novitiates and judging from Kato’s attitude, he had not found any sympathy there.

Ontari stood close enough to the throne to have been able to catch the boy’s words and her dark eyes were glowering angrily at him at the accusation. She was balling her hands into angry fists at her side.

To Lexa’s chagrin Marie had also caught the boy’s words and the personal offence was painted on her features quiet strongly. She seemed to be battling with tears for long seconds, before Boo called her attention and Marie visibly forced a smile on her features for the young boy’s sake.

The way Kato now openly glared at Ontari made it obvious that the boy did not care at all that the Ice Nation nightblood had officially proclaimed her loyalty to Lexa as the commander. He apparently distrusted both of them now.

The only consolation to Lexa was that no one else seemed to share his opinion. In an open show of support Aden even went so far as to step away from Kato and walk over to Ontari. The Ice Nation nightblood looked openly puzzled for a second by his gesture, but she inclined her head in silent acknowledgment.

Lexa’s lips thinned visibly as she stared down at Kato. The boy was foolish to openly disagree with her opinion in such a fashion and she would need to keep a closer eye on the boy for sure to make sure his attitude changed or he could be the cause of trouble in the future.

Kato seemed to understand her silent warning without any need for her to say anything at all. The boy practically seemed to shrink under her piercing glare and he mumbled an apology before keeping his eyes trained on the ground at his feet.

Lexa dismissed the novitiates into Titus’ care, Ontari joining their ranks for the next lesson, only short moments later.

The flamekeeper had been notified of the change of the situation regarding Marie’s memories and the man had appeared to be visibly relieved of the news. Lexa had not cared to ask after the nature of his relieve, she still doubted the man would ever truly learn to appreciate Marie for herself.

Marie watched the novitiates leave with a slight frown. Her thoughts had kept on circling to what Kato had said. She did not understand what she had done to the boy for him to have such an opinion of her.

“Do you think I would be disloyal?” the girl asked in an inquiring tone and her grey eyes seemed stormy.

Lexa shook her head, not even needing a moment to contemplate her answer and her voice left no room for any sliver of doubt “No, Marie, you should not pay Kato’s words any mind”.

Marie sighed but she inclined her head in acknowledgment, her shoulders still hunched slightly. Another thing still burdening her mind. Kato’s open distrust remembered her of Echo’s initial reaction to her, the assassin had clearly never liked her at all and regarded her as weak.

“What is on your mind?” Lexa inquired softly, motioning the child to step closer to the throne. With a gentle finger she urged the girl’s chin upwards, so that they could look into each other’s eyes.

“Do you think Echo knew…?” Marie breathed out the question running through her mind. She did not know if she truly wanted to know the answer though.

“Knew what?” Lexa retorted with a slightly creased brow. She did not understand what her charge was asking after at all.

Marie began shaking visibly and her voice wavered strongly “…of what the queen would do to me…?” the child’s voice gave out at the end.

Lexa closed her eyes tightly for a second, feeling the girl’s apparent misery tearing at herself. She wished with every fibre of her being to possess the possibility to turn back the time and simply execute Echo before she could have brought Marie into Nia’s clutches. “I do not know, Marie” she answered the girl honestly and she tried to keep the regret from her tone. She wished Anya and she would not have failed Marie in such a horrible way.

Marie nodded again, obviously trying to pull herself back together.

“Do you wish to return to my quarters or seek out Anya?” Lexa offered. A meeting with the ambassadors was scheduled next and she doubted that Marie would find it entertaining in any way.

Marie shook her head in denial, she knew that she should attend those meetings as the commander’s second. If Kato’s opinion was any indication, she needed to show her unwavering loyalty to Lexa.

The possibility of seeking out Anya became null a moment later when the general strode into the throne room.

Marie immediately noticed guiltily that dark circles were forming beneath her mentor’s eyes already and the exhaustion of the woman was obvious in the way she carried herself.

“What have you done now?” Anya teased the girl, interpreting her guilty expression in another fashion.

Marie bristled slightly, a pout forming on her lips “I have not done anything…” she proclaimed sulkily.

Lexa narrowed her eyes at her former mentor but gave their charge a gentle look “She was perfectly well behaved” she assured the general in an almost snide tone.

Anya sighed, rolling her eyes slightly “She looked so guilty” she defended herself.

“Yeah…” Marie interrupted her “…for keeping you awake…” she admitted and the guilt was palpable on her features.

Anya shook her head vehemently and crouched down in front of the girl, bringing them on the same eye level “That is nothing for you to feel guilty for” the general announced in a firm tone “I will stay up for as many nights as you need, Marie” she added after a moment, brown eyes honest and resolute.

Marie nodded with a slightly watery smile, gratitude swimming in her grey eyes.

“Marie will need to learn urgently on how to handle a panic attack” Lexa remarked, breaking the little moment between her former mentor and their charge “All of us will need to learn how to help her with them as well”.

Anya nodded with an understanding expression while Marie looked uncomfortable with the prospect.

“Abby knows of ways how you can pull yourself out of one before it can truly paralyze you” Lexa assured the girl in a soft tone.

Marie’s expression darkened visibly at the prospect of having to deal with Clarke’s mother again soon. “I don’t want to talk with her…” Marie grumbled under her breath defiance colouring her tone.

Lexa shook her head with a chiding expression “We shall see about that” she commented vaguely. It was possible that Abby would be able to tell them the theory of the techniques solely through the radio anyway. But in her mind Marie should not render out the possibility of taking help from the Skykru healer.

Anya guided the girl away from the throne and to sit down on a chair designated for her, while the ambassadors started to file into the room slowly.

Marie lightly smiled at Monty once she caught sight of the older boy and he gave her a friendly wave in response. The girl’s change of mind was obvious in the very way she carried herself with.

Like Lexa had predicted, Marie found the whole meeting completely boring and Anya tapped her thigh a few times to stop her from swinging her legs beneath the chair in boredom. The general glared at her young charge a few times and Marie immediately straightened herself.

The meeting seemed to stretch forever and Marie could not help the utter boredom resurfacing again and she started fidgeting in her place in impatience.

Marie had stopped listening to the meeting shortly after it had started. She knew the ambassadors were discussing about when they should gather their army together in entirety to let them march into Azgeda lands.

Anya’s lips thinned visibly and she hissed at the girl to stop this nonsense immediately.

Marie’s eyes widened visibly in reaction and she felt her body stiffening of its own accord. She remembered how she had been punished for fidgeting in meetings with the queen.

“Breathe, Marie” Anya muttered at the girl under her breath, worry filtering into her tone.

The ambassadors of the Plain Riders and the Desert Clan were fortunately arguing so loudly at the moment, that no one was paying them any mind.

Lexa noticed that something was wrong with Marie from the corner of her eye and she dearly hoped that Anya would be able to calm the girl before she would have a full-blown panic attack. She did not wish for the ambassadors to witness such a scene.

Thankfully Marie’s panic seemed to only freeze her in place and Anya finally opted to just let the girl be for the time being.

Lexa tried to bring the meeting to an end soon after, their arguments were circling around each other without coming to any solution anyway. The clans were still indecisive about the timing of the attack on Azgeda and in the end Lexa was the one to have the final say anyway. But Lexa still wished to wait a little bit longer in the hopes that starving out the Ice Nation would have the most severe effect possible.

Anya remained in her seat with worry coursing through her mind. Marie had not shown any reaction at all to the ambassadors leaving and now that she truly focused on the child, she noticed how short the girl’s breathing was.

Lexa stood from her throne and approached Marie cautiously. The girl flinched violently, when she tried to touch her hands, which seemed to claw at the armrests of the chair.

Lexa quickly tried to explain how she had pulled Marie from her panic in the morning and she asked Anya what might have triggered her episode.

Anya furrowed her brow, she was not entirely sure what had caused the girl to react in such a fashion. She had lowly scolded the girl to behave and she hoped that this had not been the cause.

“Marie” Lexa addressed the girl, ignoring the child’s severe flinch and pulling her into her arms, to take a similar position to a few hours prior. She repeated what she had done before and slowly Marie’s panic seemed to decrease.

The girl’s cheeks were tinted with a blush, when she noticed that only Lexa and Anya were left in the throne room, she had not even realized that everyone else had left. She dearly hoped that she had not caused some kind of disturbance.

Marie admitted reluctantly after some gentle prompting from Lexa that she had been whipped as a punishment for fidgeting in a meeting and that she had remembered the punishment.

Lexa and Anya bandied a worried look. How were they supposed to treat Marie normally if a little reproach could send the girl into a fit of panic?

When Marie tried to apologize for causing a scene, Lexa shushed the girl immediately, assuring her once again that there was no need for her to feel guilty for anything.

“Can I visit the foal now?” Marie asked softly.

Lexa nodded and Anya offered to accompany the girl. It would be the first time Marie would leave the walls of the tower after regaining her memories and she did not wish to leave the girl alone for it.

Anya’s slight foreboding was proven as valid when Marie seemed to completely freeze for a few moments once they stepped out of the tower. To her utter surprise the girl did not seek out her closeness like she had anticipated, but rather straightened herself and her expression became totally blank in the blink of an eye.

The girl’s gaze seemed to wander around the crowd restlessly, obviously looking for a possible threat and Anya felt a painful flash at the apparent sign of her deep fear. The girl had not been distrustful before and walking through the streets of Polis had always appeared to be something Marie enjoyed, seeing something new and fascinating all the time.

Anya nevertheless stepped closer to the girl, a glare on her features when a few citizens personally wanted to speak to Marie, probably to congratulate the girl on her recovery. It was obvious just how uncomfortable Marie was with the attention and she sent Anya a little grateful glance on the way to the stables.

Marie relaxed visibly once they entered the stables, but she hesitated in the row of boxes, turning to Anya before she continued.

Anya looked down at the girl with slight confusion.

“You’ll protect me, right?” the girl asked in a low tone, visibly shaken and her eyes still darted around the place in obvious fright.

Anya sighed, trying to swallow past the lump suddenly lodged deep within her throat “Always, Marie” she insisted honestly. She knew that she could not promise to protect Marie from all harm, the last months had been painful proof of that, but she would do everything in her powers to protect the child.

Marie nodded although it was obvious that the girl was less than truly reassured.

Anya gave the girl’s shoulders a soothing squeeze and when Marie’s features lifted again and a soft smile appeared on her face, the girl turned immediately and almost skipped down the row of boxes, coming to a skidding halt in front of Skairasha’s box.

“Look, Anya” she prompted the general, tone exited now and her grey eyes shone with joy at the sight of the young foal. The small animal was already sure on its legs now and it recognized Marie as well.

Marie giggled openly when the foal clumsily came over from her mother’s side and peaked its head through the fence. She cautiously extended her hand and stroked over its muzzle when it did not pull away immediately.

“It is so soft” she commented to Anya.

The general stepped over to her own mount and greeted the hazelnut horse which seemed pleased to see her owner again.

“Are you up to some training?” Anya asked the girl after long silent moments, which had only been interrupted by Marie’s occasional comments. Anya was genuinely enjoying to be able to observe Marie in such a joyful state and she almost regretted having to cut her time with the foal short.

Marie nodded immediately, although she internally wondered why Anya was asking at all. It was not for her to decide if she wished to train or not.

“Have you settled on a name for the foal yet?” Anya asked as she guided the girl from the stables, a hand at the girl’s back.

Marie nodded with a thoughtful expression “I thought about Muffin” she proclaimed.

“Muffin?” Anya echoed with a frown and a slight grimace. Naming a future war horse after a pastry would be something the child would do, but it would be severely unfitting of the horse.

“Not good?” Marie checked picking up on Anya’s distaste of her suggestion.

“It would be highly unusual and definitely not fitting for a war horse” Anya commented honestly.

Marie frowned slightly and she grumbled “I thought I could choose whatever name I want”. The hint of a pout on her lips and her eyes downcast.

Anya nodded with another sigh “You certainly can” she tried to appease the child.

Marie only hummed in response and they crossed the rest of the way towards the training pit in silence.

Training with Marie worked well enough and Anya was relieved to note that the girl was not freezing up during fighting. She had feared the girl could be struck by panic during combat as well, but the girl was doing reasonably well. It was obvious that taking the sleeping tonic had cost her some of her physical strength, but that would right itself on its own with a little time.

Marie frowned visibly when Alira appeared at the training pits relying to Anya that the commander wished to speak with her. The girl was obviously put off when she was told that the general was expected to arrive alone.

“Do you wish to return to the stables again?” Anya checked on the way back to the tower.

Marie shook her head in denial. What she wanted, was to accompany Anya, but she doubted that the woman would indulge her.

“You can go down and resume reading the first commander’s journal” Anya suggested, trying to find something to spike the girl’s interest with.

Marie’s frown only deepened and she shrugged nonchalantly as her only response. She was not really feeling like going into the dungeons and reading.

“Have the novitiates already returned from their training?” Marie asked with a hopeful note in her voice and her shoulders fell visibly when Alira told her they were not expected for a few hours. Titus had taken the children out of Polis for a field exercise and that might as well take the complete day.

Marie sighed moodily and she bid goodbye to Anya reluctantly.

“Behave” Anya reminded the child in a firm tone. She did not feel really comfortable with leaving the girl unattended now, but she had the suspicion that Lexa asked to see her alone because they would be speaking with Abby.

Marie nodded with a slight roll of her eyes and she walked through the tower aimlessly. She did not pay her feet any real mind and she stopped in her tracks when she realized that her feet had subconsciously carried her in front of Roan’s door.

 

 

The following chapters contains self-harm. So, if you do not wish to read about it, skip the chapter please.

 

Chapter 184

Marie looked at the two guards posted in front of Roan’s door. Both were young men and the tattoos decorating the sides of their heads indicated them easily as being members of Trikru. But she did not know either of them personally.

She frowned slightly when it occurred to her that it was entirely possible that she did not possess the authorisation to visit the Ice Nation prince any longer. She was fairly certain that the commander would have instructed the guards around the tower on which places she was allowed to be in and in which not. She had only regained her complete memories shortly before and she doubted that Lexa would have changed her orders yet. It was logical for the commander to have distrusted her before after all.

The guards had only shortly glanced at her before their eyes returned to the wall opposite of them and Marie wondered why they outright ignored her.

When she took a step in the direction of the door, one of the guards shook his head “No one is allowed entry” he proclaimed in a strong tone, laced with authority.

Sighing under her breath, Marie decided that it would probably not be worth it, to try and argue with them. She would simply have to ask Lexa if she was allowed to visit Roan or not.

Although she had not intended consciously to visit the man at all, she felt her heart rate decrease back to a normal level a short time later and she only realized just how scared she had been of facing Roan. Maybe visiting him had not been such a good idea after all. She doubted that he would actually harm her, but he shared his mother’s eyes and she did not know if she would be able to be faced with this resemblance.

With no other place to go to, Marie went up to the top floor of the tower. She shortly waved at Gustus standing post in front of the commander’s quarters together with Ryder, before she went into the quarters she now shared with Anya and Ontari.

She sighed under her breath, she did not know what to do with herself now that she was alone. She dearly hoped that whatever it was that Lexa was discussing with Anya would not take too long.

Marie plopped down on her bed, getting rid of her boots and sliding a fur over her body. She took the book from the chair next to her bed, which Anya had left there and she began to read.

But it seemed that her mind did not wish to be captured by the words. She had to re-read each sentence for what felt like a hundred times and still had forgotten what the words had actually said at the end of the complete sentence.

With a frustrated huff, Marie closed the book again and placed it back on the chair. She felt restless and did not like the feeling at all.

She shoved the fur down her body again and her eyes landed on the leather-bound book still lying on the table. It had been a gift from Lexa. Apparently, Abby had told them that writing her feelings down in a journal could be a way for her to work through aspects of her trauma without the need to truly speak about it. Clarke had tried to explain the technique to her and the theory behind it. She had accepted the book with a frown, asking what she was supposed to write down at all. Clarke had told her that she could write down whatever she wished or that she did not have to write at all, but could rather just doodle around, going with her feelings.

She stood from the bed and went over to the table, sitting down on one of the chairs as she let her fingers glide over the soft leather into which the book had been bound. Anya had said to her that such a book was costly, to manufacture a book needed a long time and a lot of effort. She knew that it had been Anya’s way to subtly tell her to take good care of such a gracious gift.

She remembered watching a film with her mother once where the female protagonist had been a young teenage girl and she had kept a diary, writing down in it what had transpired over the day each night. Maybe she could think of it in such a fashion.

Marie opened the first page of the book and stared at the blank page for a moment, she distinctly remembered that the girl from the film had started all of her entries with “Dear diary”, so she wrote that down at the top of the page as well.

She hesitated for long moments until she decided to introduce herself.

Dear diary,

My name is Marie Matthews and I was born on the Ark, but I am living with the commander Lexa and her general Anya in Polis now and this is how I came to be here: …

 

Marie continued to write for a long time, filling almost three pages. She had not written down anything about her life on the Ark. It was not important to her anymore in her mind, but had focused her first entry to all which had happened since she had been forced into the dropship.

She stopped abruptly in her writing when she reached the hunting trip during which she had lost her memory as her fingers began to shake and her eyes blurred. She wished that she would have just listened to Anya’s orders and hid within the cave, she would have never fallen from the tree and lost her memory and she would not have run from the woman on the day later, when she had not recognized her voice any longer.

Marie did not realize how much force she had been exerting on the feather in her hand until it cracked in half with an audible snap. The ends she had held in her hands cut into her palms deeply and she watched the blood flow from the cuts with a morbid fascination. She let the destroyed feather fall from her hand and watched how a few drops of her red blood fell onto the page of the journal she had been writing on.

Annoyance flashed through her mind when she saw that she had already sullied the commander’s gift. Her thoughts came to a shuddering halt and she pushed the whole journal and everything else from the table with an angry snarl rumbling from her throat.

That was what she was now, sullied.

Anger coursed hotly through her veins and she was suddenly breathing heavily as she clenched her hands into tight fists at her side and her whole body shook with a whirlwind of emotions.

Giving into a sudden urge Marie threw over the whole table with a loud yell, turning around and simply grabbing anything she could find, blind to what it was she actually was throwing around in her untamed anger.

She felt inexplicitly angry. Angry at queen Nia for putting her trough everything, angry at herself for everything she had done, angry at her fate which had turned out so bleakly, angry at the whole world and the injustice of it all and even angry at Lexa and Anya for not having been there when she would have needed them most.

Hot tears ran down her cheeks and Marie had run out of things to throw around and stood in the middle of the chaos, but she did not feel even the slightest bit calmer. She felt the pressing urge just to hit something, to shout something in the vain attempt to stop her own thoughts from whispering loudly just how sullied she was now.

She was gasping for breath at the realisation that there was nothing she could do which would ever return her innocence to her. She had killed without any hesitation under Nia’s order, the queen had taken every thing from her and turned her into a vicious monster.

Marie tried to calm herself when she realized what she had done to Anya’s possession with widened grey eyes. She went over into the bathroom intent to wash the blood from her hands, in her anger she had only deepened the cut from the feather and the blood was already drying on her skin.

As if possessed Marie grabbed the coarse brush from the sink and scrubbed at her hands. She shuddered when she suddenly remembered how dirty she had felt after the queen had touched her intimately for the first time. Crying and sobbing Marie tore at her clothes desperately, she needed to clean herself. She did not know if she would ever be able to wash the queen of her completely, but she needed to try.

The water in the bathing tube was cold and it had not been removed from the morning, but Marie did not care. She did not even feel the temperature consciously, her body suddenly felt as numb as her mind did.

She scrubbed at all the skin she could reach with as much force as her shaking fingers could muster. She did not even realize that she was causing little wounds scattered all over her body, but she noticed when the colour of the water became slightly pinkish. With a shriek Marie climbed out of the tube looking at the water with horror. She had even tainted the water.

With a frustrated snarl she threw the brush across the room against a wall and shoved at the tube, her only thought that it needed to be emptied of the water. But the metal tube did not budge under her force and Marie turned away from it, anger and frustration overshadowing everything else in her mind.

She sobbed loudly when she glanced at her complexion in the mirror. She did not notice the many bleeding fresh wounds, her grey eyes remained hefted onto the kill marks. She recognized the two kill marks Lexa and Anya had given her. But they contrasted the kill marks Nia had etched into her skin. Nia had not cared of the position and some of the marks were not even distinct even more. She was not even able to count every single one and she ground her teeth together at the realization that she was not able to recall every death she had caused either.

Her fingers shook strongly, water and blood dripping from them onto the floor, when she thought that she had not earned them. These deaths had not been brought with honour, she did not deserve them, they needed to go.

Frantically Marie searched threw a drawer of Anya’s cupboard. She remembered where she had found hidden daggers before. With a slight hysterical laugh Marie noticed that the woman had not changed their location either.

She closed her hand around the handle of one of the blades strongly, numb to the pain she was causing herself. Marie returned to the bathroom and stood in front of the mirror.

Her grey eyes looked wild when she met her own gaze, but her eyes fell to the kill marks immediately. Her skin was still glistening with moisture, as she had not bothered to dry off at all.

Marie’s teeth were clattering, while her whole body shook. Flashes of the queen forcing her into her bed and the queen etching the little scars into her skin intermixed with her own voice screaming at her just how tainted she was and the kill marks she did not deserve were a visible reminder of that.

Marie steeled herself, grounding her teeth together, she needed to this, she knew that and her fingers stopped shaking.

She watched herself in the mirror but in her mind, it felt as if she was watching someone else, for some reason she did not feel the cold steel pressing against her skin at all. She had expected the feeling of pain to register in her mind, as she watched blood flow from the cut she had made, but all she truly felt was relieve.

Anya’s daggers were in pristine condition and wickedly sharp, so Marie did not have to exert much force at all to cut the skin covering her collarbone. She was careful not to destroy the two kills marks that needed to remain and that had belonged there in the first place.

She let the dagger fall to the floor with a clattering sound suddenly when the feeling of relieve left her mind, all that was left behind was emptiness and numbness.

She staggered back into the main room of Anya’s quarters and she felt fresh tears sliding down her cheeks.

All strengths left her body all of a sudden and Marie fell to her knees in the middle of the room. She did not feel how her knees dug into the shards of a mug she had destroyed previously and she remained kneeling on the floor, crying almost soundlessly, although she did not know for sure for what she was crying. Did she even have a right to cry any longer?

 

Anya felt as if her thoughts were more turmoiled now after listening to Abby explain to them on how to handle certain situation than they had been before.

The Skykru doctor was convinced that they should expect some kind of breakdown from Marie very soon. Anya and Lexa had both been optimistic that the girl did seem to cope rather well, minus her sleeping issues, now that she had regained her memories. Abby had been insistent that it was more probable that the girl would really to start to work through her actual trauma from now on and had not truly thought about it before.

Trying to figure out what upset Marie in particular would not be too easy. Abby had explained to them that basically everything from a certain word or phrase, a touch, a loud noise, a smell or even a simple object could awake memories in the child’s mind procuring a panic attack.

At least Lexa’s way of dealing with Marie having a panic attack had been correct so far, but it would certainly cause problems if the girl would have a panic attack during training or outside of the tower in general.

Abby had cautioned them that Marie should still remain under constant watch, but Anya had scoffed at that. The girl was not a small child after all and should be perfectly fine to be on her own for a few hours. She had left her at the base floor of the tower and Anya was fairly certain that the girl would have followed her suggestion and went into the commander’s temple reading the first commander’s journal.

She recognized the error of that thought as soon as she left the commander’s quarters. Gustus had stopped her shortly and said that Marie had returned to their quarters some time ago and it had sounded as if she had been throwing stuff around.

Anya narrowed her eyes in slight anger and nodded curtly to Gustus, striding through the hall quickly and almost ripping the door open. She had told Marie before that it was perfectly acceptable to vent off her anger on the training pits or even in the woods, but that is was absolutely unacceptable to do so within their quarters and destroy any of her possessions in the process.

She stopped dead in her tracks in front of the open door at the sight which greeted her. The room looked as if a hurricane had rampaged through it and Marie was kneeling in the middle of it, stark naked, crying and shaking.

Anya paled instantly when she noticed all the blood on the girl’s body, it did not seem as if Marie had realized her arrival yet at all. “Marie, what have you done?” Anya asked trying desperately to keep her tone calm although she felt anything but calm, eyes scanning over the room quickly and returning to her charge’s face. She slowly stepped into the room when Marie blinked once as the first reaction to her presence.

“They needed to be gone” Marie answered in a flat tone, eyes dull and lifeless, not looking up but staring at nothing.

For a moment Anya was utterly confused by Marie’s answer, until it clicked in her mind. She noticed the still opened drawer and the location of most of the blood on Marie’s body and horror settled in her mind. The girl must have cut away the kill marks from her body. The wounds were still sluggishly bleeding, but what really sent shivers through her body was the girl’s expression, she seemed nothing more than a shell of herself, broken and destroyed.

The general stepped through the room, not caring on what exactly she was stepping on at all, and grabbed a fur from her bed and quickly wrapped Marie into it. The girl needed to be looked at by Clarke, she did not know just how deep the wounds were, but they surely needed to be cleaned and wrapped and she wanted Marie removed from the chaos she had caused momentarily. It did not seem as if the girl was aware of what she had truly done, but she could already guess how guilty Marie would be once she did so.

Anya did not care at the moment what had been destroyed or how her bathroom looked like, the girl’s skin was still wet, so she must have bathed, all that mattered was taking care of Marie now.

She noticed absentmindedly how Marie did not even flinch at her touch and showed absolutely no reaction to being picked up at all. She carried the girl through the hall towards the commander’s quarters with quick strides. Gustus frowned at her in obvious confusion but opened the doors for her without any prompting needed.

 

 

Chapter 185

Lexa looked up, annoyance flashing over her features momentarily at being interrupted and she backed off slightly from Clarke. But her expression turned worried in the fraction of a second when she noticed Marie’s state.

Anya placed Marie down on the sofa, the girl’s eyes were focused on the floor and she did not react as the general removed the fur from her body.

Lexa gasped audibly at the condition of Marie’s body “What has happened?” she asked immediately.

Clarke had stepped around Lexa and turned around with a sigh, going into the bathroom to retrieve her healing equipment.

 “They needed to be gone” Marie repeated in a monotonous voice, not looking at Lexa at all.

Lexa furrowed her brow, not understanding what this vague answer was supposed to mean.

She watched how Marie suddenly seemed to focus on her hands, which were both covered more or less in already drying blood, and began scratching at them frantically.

“Marie, stop!” Anya said, crouching down next to the girl and forcefully pulling the child’s hand apart.

“They are sullied…I am tainted…I cannot get clean…” the girl mumbled, scratching at her thighs now, as she could not reach her hands together anymore.

Lexa frowned when Anya bandied a look with her over her shoulder. Abby’s prediction about a breakdown of their charge had obviously been more than accurate, but the commander had not expected it to happen this quickly, nor this severely.

“Stop with the scratching” Anya warned the girl in a strict tone, which seemed to instantly still Marie’s frantic movements with an almost startled expression. The general stood up to make room for Clarke and watched with a furrowed brow how Marie flinched away from Clarke’s hands before they could even make contact with any part of her body.

The child scrambled out of the way on the couch, baking back into a corner and trying to get out of reach.

“Clarke needs to look at your wounds” Lexa tried to explain to the child in a soothing tone. With a bit of slight force, she nudged the girl away from the corner of the sofa and slid onto the piece of furniture behind their charge, allowing her to seek comfort from her presence.

Marie only very reluctantly allowed Clarke to touch her body. The girl did not show any real reaction when Clarke probed gently at the skin she had cut away, trying to assess just how deeply the girl had cut herself. Her reactions did not seem to be born of pain, but only of fear. The girl had not seemed truly comfortable in Clarke’s presence before, but she had not been this afraid of her either and watching Marie like this worried Lexa and Anya deeply.

Clarke tried to be as gentle and quick as possible while trying to clean out the wounds on Marie’s collarbones. She grimaced slightly at the sight of the cleaned wounds, the girl had sliced away quiet deeply at her skin and the wounded areas were not small either. The wounds would surely take a few weeks to heal completely and they would probably also scar. She noticed how Marie must have been careful to leave two kill marks intact and she remembered that the girl had received those two in TonDC.

Her blue eyes were full of compassion when they connected with Lexa’s over the child’s shoulders and she had to force her tone to remain even remotely steady “She cut away her kill marks”.

Lexa inhaled sharply, as the girl’s previous answer now made sense in a horrific way. Anya sighed under her breath, she had already made the connection herself and had not needed prove, but she could see that Marie had been careful to leave their kill marks intact.

“They needed to be gone…” Marie agreed in a distant tone, grey eyes focused on nothing in particular with a far-away look in them.

“It will be alright” Lexa tried to sooth the girl in a soft tone, putting a hand against the girl’s back carefully, trying not to touch any of the scratch wounds she could already see.

“If I look at her, it is probably better if she takes a bath with healing herbs, it will clean all the little wounds more thoroughly” Clarke assessed after a moment of silence. She had not yet seen Marie back, but her front was already littered in various small wounds. It would be easier to apply some poultice to them later to assist with the healing once they were clean.

Anya nodded and turned to call for handmaidens to prepare such a bath. She also quickly left the commander’s quarters, wanting to inspect her quarters before she would send handmaidens to clean up all the mess left behind by Marie.

She shook her head in agitation at the sight of the chaos. Marie seemed to have destroyed just about everything which could have been destroyed by throwing it on the floor. The general noticed the journal Lexa had given to their charge among the many things scattered over the floor. She opened it out of curiosity and was slightly astounded to see that the child had actually started to write something down. Anya only shortly glanced over what Marie had written and she frowned when she saw that Marie had stopped with her narration at exactly the point where they had gotten separated during their hunting outing. She also noticed the blood which had dropped onto the page and wondered how the child had originally hurt herself, before she had apparently lost it.

She had started to at least right the furniture again, when she shook her head and went over into the bathroom. It seemed Marie had thrown around some stuff here as well and Anya instantly found the bloodied dagger beneath the sink. She felt her stomach role and sour bile rise in her throat when she found the slices of bloodied skin Marie had cut off from her body.

Anya picked up the coarse brush the child must have used to clean her body with and her stomach gave another lurch at the state of it. The bristles were bloody and it looked as if the girl might have even scratched hard enough in some places to remove skin as well. She threw the brush into a waste bin, not wanting it to remain within their quarters. It seemed Abby was correct and they could not leave the girl alone at all right now.

The girl’s clothing was torn in places and would need to be repaired. Marie had obviously not been careful in removing them but must have simply ripped them from her body.

She left the bathroom when she heard a handmaid knock at the door. Anya let the young woman inside, instructing her to clear out all the mess. She gathered a few clothes fresh clothes for Marie and left her quarters to return to the commander’s.

Marie was still sitting on the sofa in front of Lexa, but she had the fur wound tightly around her small frame again while handmaidens bustled around to prepare the bath for her in silence.

Lexa seemed to be whispering soothing words into Marie’s ears, but the child looked anything but relaxed.

Clarke was speaking lowly with her mother over the radio explaining quickly what had just happened.

Anya stepped over to the sofa crouching down in front of Marie and tried to force a friendly and calm expression onto her features. In reality Anya wished for nothing more than to have Nia in front of her and to be able to slowly and painfully torture the vile woman to death.

Now that Anya was closer to their charge and Lexa, she could hear that the commander in fact was trying to urge Marie to tell her what had happened or rather what had caused her to do what she had done.

It did not seem as if her gentle probing was having much of an effect though, as Marie simply stared away from the commander and did not seem to react to the woman’s words at all.

“Marie” Anya addressed the child in a rather sharp tone and a strict expression and the child’s grey eyes instantly snapped to her face, connecting with her own eyes. “Tell me what you have done after I left you?” the general demanded, brown eyes strict and unyielding.

Marie grasped harder at the furs around her body, her knuckles standing out white under her skin, but her tone was surprisingly steady as she answered “I did not want to continue to read the commander’s journal, so I wandered through the tower”.

Anya’s lips thinned slightly, she knew that Lexa had explained to Marie additionally to herself just how important it was to them that they always were aware of their charge’s current location.

“I ended up in front of Roan’s quarters” Marie continued “The guards did not let me enter…”. The girl stopped and seemed to recall something “I did not know if I truly wanted to see him…Can you be there when I see him?” she asked, voice innocent and almost pleading.

Anya curtly nodded, but she did not let her features soften, they were not speaking about Roan after all.

Marie’s eyes seemed to tear up as she made to open her mouth again and Anya shook her head, interrupting their charge “I did not ask you to cry, I ask for an explanation. Crying will not change anything now, Marie” she chided the girl, voice the slightest bit softened.

Marie’s own features hardened visibly at Anya’s reprimand and she nodded curtly, before she continued to answer in a steady tone “I returned to our quarters. I started to read a bit, but I could not concentrate. With nothing else to do, I thought to try to start to use the journal you gave to me” the girl looked over her shoulder at Lexa minutely, before she spoke up again “I stopped writing when…” Marie’s voice wavered and she balled her hands into tight fists again at her side. Her breathing became slightly irregular and Lexa and Anya bandied a worried glance.

“You are safe here” Lexa tried to reassure the girl in a soft tone.

Marie nodded, visibly trying to pull herself together. “The quill broke in my fingers” she said, voice taking on a far-away quality again “I cut my hand and blood dropped onto the page, sullying it. Like I am…I nee…needed to…to get clean” she forced out, her whole frame shaking visibly.

The girl lost the fight against her emotions and the first tears ran down her cheeks already.

Anya’s expression turned a lot gentler as she wiped them from Marie’s skin carefully, but her tone was still infused with strictness “And the kill marks?”

Marie’s grey eyes looked impossibly wide as she stared at Anya for a moment and her answer was only a whisper “They are not a sign of honour…they needed to be gone” she repeated herself. It was obvious that she must have been telling herself this same fact for some time to be this convinced of it.

“They could not stay” Marie added, voice louder now, but still wavering “The queen made them…I cannot have something of her…”. The girl was crying in earnest now and her gaze switched between Anya and Lexa, completely ignoring Clarke’s presence or the handmaiden still busy with preparing the bath.

Anya thought it was probably good the girl did not pay Clarke any mind. The blonde healer still held the radio in her hand and her finger pressed the button Anya had seen her use before to speak with her mother, so Abby was probably listening in Arkadia.

Hearing the girl’s reasonings felt like a dagger to her own heart to the general and she doubted that Lexa was feeling any different. The worse was not to know on how to efficiently help Marie in her recovery. It had obviously been foolish to assume that the child was coping well with what she had suffered through, as if her sleeping problems and panic attacks had not been enough already.

Clarke went over into the bathroom a moment later to add the herbs which should help to disinfect all the little wounds the girl had caused to her skin. She stayed within the bathroom for a moment and closed the door behind herself

“Have you heard everything?” Clarke asked into the radio, waiting for her mother’s reply. Seeing the child suffering like that was truly painful and she hoped there was something they could do.

“Yes” her mother’s voice answered immediately but it sounded heavy “I fear I cannot offer you what you have been hoping for, Clarke. There is no easy way for her to recover. She needs time. She should try to use the journal again at one point, but talking with her would probably work better.”

Clarke nodded and waited for her mother to continue until she realized that her mother would not have been able to see her nodding and was probably waiting for her to say something as well. “I had feared that already. She did not seem to have been doing this bad” she commented with a grimace.

“Just because she has not been expressing her turmoil so far does not mean that she has been coping with any of it” her mother’s voice cautioned.

Clarke sighed and asked “Do you think it would be beneficial if she returned to Arkadia so that you could make a proper therapy with her?” She felt slightly bad for asking her mother without discussing this with Lexa and Anya beforehand, but it seemed a logical solution.

“Marie will not recover overnight, but I am not a qualified psychologist either and it is clear Marie does not trust me. It is doubtful separating her from the commander and the general now would actually be beneficial. Just brief the commander and the general again about what we have discussed and do not leave Marie unattended. Although she has not hurt herself with intention of inflicting wounds, does not mean that she would not. She should get better with time and enough care” her mother answered.

Clarke nodded again and quickly said her goodbyes to her mother before she left the bathroom. “Your bath is ready” she proclaimed in a gentle tone and kindly smiled at Marie who was sitting between Lexa and Anya, looking utterly lost.

Anya offered a hand to Marie and actually lead the girl towards the bathroom still holding the child’s hand. The general sighed when she saw just how many wounds Marie had inflicted upon herself in her frantic attempt to get clean.

Anya remembered that Abby had cautioned them that it was extremely important that no one of them gave Marie the feeling that she was in any way dirty or tainted after having been raped, but it was obvious that Marie was already feeling that way and she highly doubted it would be easy to convince the child of the opposite now.

She sat down on a stool next to the bathing tube intent on staying with Marie until the girl had finished. Marie did in fact looked rather relived to see her sit down and Anya gave her a slight smile in silent reassurance.

“Am I in trouble?” the child asked after lowering herself into the bathing tube and worried her bottom lip between her teeth.

Anya sighed, she would be lying if she said that she was not slightly angry about the girl causing such chaos in their quarters, but the fact that Marie had hurt herself was worrying immensely and her anger paled in comparison to her worry, so she shook her head in the negative. “You should have spoken to one of us before you did that” Anya reprimanded the girl lightly and motioned to the wounds on her collarbone. Although she could fathom her reasoning, acting in such a way was irresponsible and foolish.

Marie nodded with a downcast expression. “Would you have let me do it?” the child asked after a moment in a faint tone.

Anya snorted under her breath “Certainly not like that” she deadpanned.

Marie nodded again and the glint in her grey eyes clearly showed that she did not truly regret what she had done. She had wanted to erase the kill marks and she had done so.

When Marie slid deeper into the water, she visibly winced as the water came into contact with the more extensive wounds.

“I do not want to see you hurt yourself again on purpose ever again” Anya addressed the girl in a sharp tone.

Marie nodded with wide eyes after some silent moments and her tone was laced with dissent “I have not done it to hurt myself…It has not hurt…I had not realized I used the brush so hard…”

Anya sighed “I gathered as much already. But Marie there is nothing sullied or tainted about you, there is nothing you need to remove from yourself with such force”.

Marie’s grey eyes glistened with a sheen of tears as she shook her head “But I can still feel her f…fi…fingers…” she sobbed out.

Anya slid closer to the bathing tube and took the girl’s hand which had been grasping the edge harshly into hers “What Nia has done to you has not tainted you in any way” she repeated in a firm tone and her eyes bore into Marie’s intently.

Marie nodded with tearful eyes, but Anya doubted that her words would have truly already sunk into the girl’s mind, she had the foreboding that they would be repeating these words to Marie for some time now.

“Where is Lexa?” Marie asked next in a small tone, her grey eyes flickering to the door momentarily.

Anya smiled gently at the child “In the main room” she reassured the girl “You can call out to her, if you want. But I guess that you can come out of the bath soon any way”.

“Can we stay here tonight?” Marie breathed out, barely loud enough for Anya to decipher the words, although she was sitting very close to the child.

Anya sighed, the arrangement would be less than ideal, but she already knew what Lexa’s answer would be, so she nodded with a slight smile ghosting over her lips.

Marie was visibly relived at her answer, but her expression turned slightly sheepish “I am sorry that I destroyed your stuff…” she trailed off.

Anya’s lips thinned slightly, although she shook her head and waved away the girl’s apology “Possessions can be replaced, Marie, but promise me, that you speak to me or Lexa or even Ontari or Clarke, if you feel overwhelmed like this again” she said to her charge her eyes boring into Marie’s grey ones.

Marie nodded, although doubt and hesitation were visible on her features “I am not supposed to be weak…” she reasoned lowly and looked away from Anya with a slight pout.

Anya forced the child to look back at her with a gentle finger on her chin, guiding her face back to look into her eyes and her voice was firm when she said “You are not weak now, nor have you been before, Marie. Asking for help and speaking about what you are feeling is not weakness”.

Marie nodded again, but her features still looked troubled “Lexa and you do not speak about things like this…”

Anya inclined her head with a slight grimace. She remembered that Marie had only been satisfied when she and Lexa reciprocated the girl’s feeling by proclaiming their love for the girl as well. She squeezed the girl’s fingers gently “We have not suffered through what you have” she reasoned “And we only wish to help you get better. Burying your feelings will only make it worse in the long run”.

“Okay” the child agreed although the doubt was still strongly visible on her features “I do not want to be a bother…”

“You could never be” Anya reassured her charge in a decisive tone and an assuring smile.

 

 

Chapter 186

Anya helped Marie from the bath some time later and gently wiped the girl’s body dry. The contact with water had opened some of the wounds again and they had resumed to bleed sluggishly and she grimaced when she noticed how the reddish water dropped from Marie’s hand.

“Clarke will need to dress some of your wounds” Anya said and guided Marie out of the bathroom, the towel still slung around her frame.

Anya remained beside Marie the whole time while Clarke took a look at the various wounds, applying poultice on some of them and bandages on others.

“The skin you have cut away can not be stitched close. The wounds are too wide for that” Clarke explained to Marie with a slight grimace “It will take some time until they heal”. She wound a bandage around the girl’s upper body, careful not to apply it too tightly. She doubted that the large wounds would heal quickly or the girl would need to stop moving around so much for a few days to give the skin the chance to close.

Lexa had changed out of her commander regalia and watched the proceedings from one of the armchairs in silence, a book balanced on her knees.

“Marie wants us to sleep here tonight” Anya proclaimed nonchalantly towards Lexa.

The commander raised a brow at her general, but nodded her consent immediately, while Clarke looked slightly confused.

“You might still need a bigger bed after all” Anya added in a teasing tone and Marie giggled slightly. She remembered her mentor uttering the same jab before to Lexa. Anya helped the girl into a pair of lose trousers and a soft lose shirt quickly, before guiding their charge over to the couch.

Lexa only rolled her eyes at the general, not deeming this worth of an actual comment “Have you eaten anything yet?” she addressed Marie instead in a kind tone.

Marie shook her head and noticed just now that dinner had obviously been served during her time in the bath. She grimaced slightly when Lexa pushed a cup with tea into her hand, she immediately recognized the smell of it. It was the tea which helped to settle her stomach, but even with a generous amount of honey it still tasted horrible.

It was obvious that Clarke was not truly comfortable with the idea of Anya and Marie staying with them and the blonde woman did not seem to know what to do with herself or how to act now.

“Drink it” Anya chided the girl after she had watched Marie fiddling with the cup for a few moments without actually taking even one sip. Marie pulled a face in reaction and turned her pleading eyes towards Lexa.

While Anya narrowed her eyes at the child taking up her habit again of trying to get Lexa to contradict something she had just said, Lexa seemed slightly amused and her tone was kind “The tea is supposed to help your stomach, Marie, if you do not wish to get unwell again, you will have to drink it”. It had been obvious in the last days that the tea was efficiently working for their charge.

Marie’s shoulders slumped visibly and she drank some of the tea with her lips pulled into a full-fledged pout, her grimace only worsening with every second. The thought of her stomach clenching again and having to throw up her food did not sound appealing though, so she forced herself to down the bitter brew.

Clarke watched the interactions between Marie and both Trikru women in silence, feeling slightly out of place. She had already guessed that the relationship between Lexa and Marie would grow much more intense once the girl would remember Lexa, but she had not expected this, nor that Anya would apparently be spending more time in the commander’s quarters now as well. There was no way of predicting just how long it would take Marie to truly start her recovery and she had no idea just how Lexa planned to deal with this fact.

“Can I talk to you for a minute?” Clarke asked trying to keep a light tone, addressing Lexa and although the commander’s face showed slight puzzlement for a moment, the brunette nodded and motioned Clarke towards the balcony.

Lexa followed the blonde onto the balcony, giving Marie a kind smile before she closed the door behind them with a soft click, she still caught Anya rolling her eyes slightly in obvious annoyance. She let her gaze travel over the city beneath them shortly, although dusk was already falling around them there was still much movement to be seen on the streets.

The commander raised a brow in silent question when her green eyes returned to Clarke, waiting patiently for her to state her mind.

“Lexa, how do you expect this to work?” Clarke asked as soon as their gazes met, the agitation was visible on her slightly drawn features and in the tone of her voice. They had never truly discussed Clarke’s gradual moving into the commander’s quarters, it had just happened naturally over time. Although Clarke officially still possessed her own rooms in the tower, she had not set foot into it for weeks now.

Lexa’s brows knitted together in obvious confusion, as she leaned back against the railing of the balcony and fully faced Clarke now. “We go to sleep and Marie will hopefully not have as much nightmares” Lexa answered slowly, obviously choosing every word carefully and not understanding the origin of Clarke’s agitation.

Clarke breathed out a frustrated puff of air, slight anger flashing through her blue eyes at the clueless brunette. “Marie barely tolerates my presence, she feels uneasy around me” Clarke bit out through clenched teeth.

“You have kept her company during our absence before, she is only wary of you now” Lexa sighed under her breath, defensiveness appearing on her features “What would you have me do? Send Marie away? When she clearly wishes to stay…”

Clarke shook her head, pinching the bridge of her nose “I did not say that, nor would I expect you to”. She would truly not expect Lexa to turn Marie down in any form, she knew after all just how important the blonde girl was to the commander. Lexa was correct that she had stayed with Marie when the commander and her general had been on the traditional hunt being part of Lincoln’s and Octavia’s bonding, but the girl had been miserable still with her company and she had barely managed to get her to sleep at all.

“I still fail to understand the reason for your agitation” Lexa said after a moment of silence, the tenseness had not left Clarke’s body so she was still upset and she was not blind to that fact. “Marie will need to get used to your presence eventually and she will with time. But I am surely not going to deny her now” the last statement was delivered in an unyielding tone ringing with finality. She knew without the sliver of a doubt that she loved Clarke with all her being, but Marie also held a part of her heart irrevocably and the child needed her now more than ever.

“I do not think that you would” Clarke repeated her assurance, fearing that she had affronted the young leader. She could even understand to some extent why Lexa had gotten so defensive, but she still doubted this arrangement could work at all. “Where has she slept before?” Clarke asked after another moment making her voice softer again.

Lexa’s answer was immediate and delivered with a slightly furrowed brow “In my bed, between me and Anya”.

Clarke raised a brow and astonishment was written over her features. She had heard the handmaidens gossiping about that, but she had chalked that off to senseless rumours or that it might have happened in Marie’s bad nights only. She truly would not have believed that it would be fitting for the mighty commander to share her private quarters and her bed with one of her generals and her second. She could almost picture Titus’ reaction to finding out the changed living arrangements and she chuckled under her breath.

Lexa sighed again, as she thought about all the progress the girl had made before and her voice sounded slightly bitter, oblivious to Clarke’s lightened mood as her own soured “Her nightmares had almost ceased. We had planned to try sleeping separated again…”

The rest of Clarke’s anger evaporated completely when she noticed the lingering sadness in Lexa’s green eyes “She will recover, Lexa” she tried to reassure the commander and put her hand onto Lexa’s hand which had still been grasping onto the railing.

Lexa’s gaze looked doubtful and her tone sounded almost resigned “Her condition is worse than it ever has been before. Physically she is stronger than ever, but mentally …” Pain flashed through her green eyes as her words trailed off.

Clarke squeezed her hand reassuringly and her voice was firm “Marie will recover, Lexa. I know that mental wounds take the longest time to heal, but she is not alone and she is strong. She has not given up yet. Your and Anya’s love will give her the strength that she needs. Both of you are doing all you can to help her, all she needs now is time”.

Lexa sighed again, as she turned their hands around so that their fingers could entwine. Clarke’s words had reassured her to some extent and she felt a small flicker of hope blossoming within her chest “And you shall lend me strength” she said gravely, looking down at their joined hands.

Clarke smiled at the unbelievingly romantic words. Internally she wondered how this powerful warlord could be so skilled and effortless with her words, while Lexa was strong and powerful as the commander, she was soft and gentle as a private woman. She doubted Lexa would truly need to draw strength from her, the woman always seemed as unwavering as stone in her function as the commander, but she would still always be there to reassure the young leader, should she be doubting herself. “And what about Ontari?” she asked. She was aware that the Ice Nation nightblood now also resided in the general’s quarters. She had also heard Anya telling the commander how the nightblood had assumed to be send away as soon as Marie had regained her memories again. Clarke was not sure of their intentions for Ontari, but she highly doubted it would be beneficial for the relationship between Anya and Ontari, if the nightblood was send back into a guarded room and farer away from the woman who was supposed to be her mentor now.

“The conclave will not return before tomorrow at midday” Lexa retorted with a light sigh, shaking her head slightly. She would think about it until tomorrow although she was aware that it would not be feasible for all three of them to move into her quarters as well, even for a few nights. They would need to see how Marie’s sleeping problems developed, it might be a possibility to have the girl switch between their quarters.

Clarke nodded in acknowledgment and she tried to lighten the mood as Lexa’s features still looked slightly drawn. “So, you think it likely Marie will be sneaking to climb into your bed in the future?” she asked and added with a slight twinkle to her eyes “I shall remember to wear a nightgown from now on then”.

The corners of Lexa’s mouth tilted upwards in the ghost of a smile “I had wanted to advise you on that anyway. Marie must have gotten good at sneaking around if she managed to take the sleeping aid for several nights without waking Anya, so, it is very likely”.

“Who knew the mighty commander would be a teddy bear to a little girl?” Clarke teased the other woman with a smile.

Lexa’s brows furrowed in confusion at the unfamiliar term “A what?” She thought to have read it somewhere already but she could not remember what it had been supposed to be.

Clarke laughed lightly and shook her head at the adorable expression on Lexa’s face, before she explained “A teddy bear is a stuffed animal. Small kids usually had stuffed animals to cuddle with them in bed to make it easier to sleep”.

“I am not a stuffed animal, Clarke, I am merely offering comfort to Marie” the commander retorted, bristling apparently at the comparison.

Clarke’s laugh only deepened “Not literally” she agreed and although her features sobered somewhat, the smile remained on her lips “You are really good with her. You would have made for a wonderful mother” she commented thoughtfully.

Lexa’s expression turned perplexed for a moment and her voice was contemplative “I could have never imagined how you and your people would change my life”. Even when Costia had still been with her, she had never dared to envision anything else than being the commander and serving her people. It had always been clear to her that she would be sacrificing her life to her people and she had learned from a very young age that a commander did not wish for private fulfilment, a commander’s life was usually too short for it anyway.

Clarke inclined her head in silent agreement “I would think not” she snorted, before her expression sobered completely “I know not all have been good changes…” Her people had not made it easy for the commander to ease their integration into the grounder society and Clarke internally highly doubted that Skykru would not cause more problems in the future.

Now it was Lexa’s turn to squeeze Clarke’s hand and her eyes were honest as she said “Integrating your people will take time, but the struggle will be worth it”. She still believed that Skykru’s knowledge could be essential for her people to flourish.

Clarke smiled and leaned over, connecting their lips in a soft kiss which easily communicated much more than a lot of words ever could.

“We should return inside” Lexa said, their lips barely inches apart and she still felt Clarke’s breaths tickling over her skin. They had been outside on the balcony for some time now and she knew just how worried Marie could become in even a short time, when she thought that one of them could be angry with her and she doubted that the girl had missed that Clarke was upset.

Clarke nodded with a slight sigh, but she still connected their lips once more, sighing deeply into the kiss. She knew that the atmosphere would probably remain awkward and tense during the night.

True to Lexa’s foreboding, Marie seemed rather nervous and tense once they returned. Anya had tried to the best of her abilities to convince their charge that everything was alright and had tried to divert the girl’s attention during Lexa’s absence, but Marie had wondered if she was the reason for Clarke wanting to speak with Lexa alone and if she might have done something wrong. Lexa and Anya had rarely spoken with each other in a way that she was not allowed to listen, so there had not been any secrets between them and she did not understand the reason for the obvious change.

Once the commander sat down on the couch, the girl immediately scooted over to her, her grey eyes flitting to the woman’s face instantly, trying to gauge her reaction and mood, as she leaned against her arm, obviously searching physical contact, but not daring to fully cuddle up to the woman without being asked or offered to.

Lexa smiled reassuringly at Marie, putting an arm around her smaller body immediately and she did not react as if it was an unnormal occurrence when the child almost merged with her side with a sigh.

Anya watched the girl’s antics with a slight shake of her head, although she was internally relived to see the girl behave like her old self again. Clarke’s expression was tender as she watched the interaction between Marie and Lexa, both of them seemed absolutely content and she knew just how much Lexa had missed the blonde girl, so the close contact was probably soothing to both of them likewise.

“Marie” Anya addressed the girl in a calm tone and waited until the girl’s grey eyes were peering up at her to ask “How have your sleeping arrangements been in Azgeda?” Anya knew that nobody would have probably cared about the child’s sleeping problems then and she highly doubted that they would have just vanished due to her memory loss and even if they had, it would not have taken long for new nightmare material to be spun around the girl. The fact that Marie seemed to have developed the skill to cry without emitting much sounds at all prompted the conclusion that the child must have been punished for crying after having a nightmare.

Lexa tightened her arm around the girl reassuringly when she felt her body shake slightly and she frowned at her former mentor, wondering why the woman had chosen to bring something like that up now.

“Before Ontari arrived I was mostly alone” Marie answered, voice noticeably quivering.

Anya waited for their charge to continue patiently with her answer.

“If I did not have to stay with the queen…” Marie said, her whole frame now shuddering as she tried hard to suppress the memories of all those nights “… I sometimes shared a bed with Ontari” she admitted in a low voice.

“Sometimes?” Anya checked with a slight frown. The way the girl was usually so clingy in the hours of the night made it sound weird that she should have only sought out the nightblood girl on a few occasions. But it also had not sounded as if Marie had been encouraged to be close to anyone during her time with the queen and had been distrustful off everyone around them; Anya internally noted to question the girl more on the training she had received there, the girl had not been very forthcoming with information so far.

Marie shrugged slightly “I was not supposed to” she admitted and her body gave another shudder as she remembered how one of the members of the loyal guard had found her in Ontari’s bed one morning when he had wanted to collect the girls for training. He had told his queen and the woman had been less than pleased about yet another sign of weakness from Marie.

Lexa felt her heart bleeding for their charge, wishing once more that they could have somehow spared Marie from the whole ordeal. She was almost looking forward to face the Ice queen in the upcoming war and finally get revenge on Costia’s behalf and now on Marie’s as well.

When Lexa bandied a look with her former mentor, she could see her own thirst for revenge being reflected in her mentor’s brown eyes, even death by a thousand cuts would not be a gruesome enough death for Nia.

 

 

Chapter 187

In Clarke’s opinion the shared dinner went over better than she had anticipated. The easy familiarity and fellowship between Lexa and the general were glaringly obvious and somehow Marie had fitted right into it naturally.

Although Marie had remained silent through vast stretches of the conversation neither of the two Trikru women had seemed put off by it. The girl had seemed comfy and content in Lexa’s one-armed hug and had only contributed something to the conversation when she was truly interested, but Clarke had seen that Marie’s grey eyes had always been alert so the child had at least listened to every word. Anya was a little worried by their charge’s dwindled talkativeness but she chalked it off to exhaustion and she hypothesized that the girl would be more her chirpy self once she truly had recovered.

Clarke was surprised to notice that the general was apparently making great efforts to include Clarke in the conversation and the healer was grateful for it. Clarke found it usually hard to get into conversations with the general, she was aware of just how badly their acquaintance had started off and most of the times Clarke was unable to read the emotions behind the austere woman’s mannerism, so it was impossible for her to recognize her dry wit of humour and she was never totally sure if the woman was making a snide comment out of spite or if it had been her attempt at a joke. Clarke would have expected for the general to be even more against her now that she was so close to Lexa, but the opposite seemed to be the case actually.

Sharing your living quarters with anyone beside your close blood relatives was unheard of on the Ark. So, Clarke found the concept of Lexa and Anya sharing simply for Marie’s benefit still slightly alien and she was a little antsy about how the night would turn out.

“She won’t do that” Marie interjected, pulling Clarke from her thoughts and the blonde furrowed her brow just noticing now that she had no clue about what they were speaking at all.

Anya raised a brow in silent question at her charge, surprised that Marie chose to contribute now. The conversation had turned back to the impending war. Lexa had planned to take Roan with them, finally giving him the chance to officially challenge his mother for her throne. Anya had kept close watch of the girl’s reaction to the change in subject and Lexa had let her fingers glide soothingly over the girl’s side, obviously anticipating a bad reaction as well, but the girl’s tone had been steady and her grey eyes intent.

“Why do you think that?” Lexa questioned the girl in a calm tone, when Marie failed to give an answer for a few moments.

Marie peered up at Lexa shortly before her gaze returned to Anya “The queen would not face anyone out right. She has more than enough people willing to die for her. She would not risk losing her life and throne. She wants you dead and she would not fight fairly” the girl argued in a slightly heated tone.

Lexa sighed under her breath as she commented lightly “I would never expect Nia to fight fairly”. It did not slip her notice how Marie still stuck to calling the leader of the Ice Nation “the queen”, she could not remember a single occurrence where the child had simply used her name. This fact only cemented in her mind just how deathly afraid Marie obviously still was of Nia.

Marie huffed lightly and backed away a little from Lexa, looking up at the woman with a gaze that clearly conveyed that she was not feeling as if the commander had taken her words serious enough. “She will not fight you at all” Marie rants in a slightly heated tone “There are too many who would take her place in a fight to death” her grey eyes seemed to almost burn in their intensity.

“I do not plan to fight her Marie” Lexa tried to appease the upset child before she could truly get angry. Abby had warned them that the girl could also be angered way more easily and lose control over her temper, which would hopefully right itself over time as well. It irritated her slightly to be interrupted and talked back to like that by Marie which was uncharacteristic for the otherwise soft-spoken child.

“But you said…” Marie retorted with an angry frown.

“Marie” Anya chided their charge in a strict tone, making the girl stop abruptly and turn around to face the general.

Her words did not seem to have all that much of an effect on the girl though. “Lexa is not allowed to die!” Marie exclaimed but her tone had turned from angry to obviously been agitated.

Lexa silenced Anya with a mute gesture, she was certain the general’s next words would have been less than tactful and it was apparent to her that the girl’s anger stemmed mostly from worry. “Marie, look at me” the commander addressed the girl in a calm but strong tone, waiting until their charge’s grey eyes connected with hers before she continued gravely “We have spoken about this several times already” she said, taking the girl’s smaller hands into her own “None of us can promise not to die, Marie, but we are taking every precaution possible that we are not going to fall in the upcoming war.” Lexa purposefully had included Anya in her statement as she knew without a sliver of doubt that their charge was worrying for Anya in the same way.

After long silent moments of simply staring into each other’s eyes, Marie sighed in obvious defeat. Her shoulders sagged visibly and she inclined her head with a miserable expression “I am sorry…” she breathed out a mumbled apology.

Lexa nodded in acknowledgement and gave the girl’s hands a soft reassuring squeeze before she let go of them, her features turned stricter again as she reminded “You know that you are welcome to speak freely in private, but I cannot have you contradict and argue with me in meetings like you just did, Marie, remember that.”

Marie nodded again, her expression a weird mixture out of determination and apology, before she leaned back against Lexa fully and turned her eyes back to Anya, obviously trying to assess if the general could be angry with her.

Clarke had watched the whole exchange in silence. She internally had to agree with Marie, Lexa could not die and she did not think that just out of obvious selfish reasons. Anya had explained to her some time ago that the coalition was shaky now that Azgeda had broken off from them and the other clans were still wary of Skykru, without Lexa as the commander to hold them all together, it was reasonable to assume that the coalition would fraction again and even more chaos and war would overshadow the ground.

Besides that, she was truly astonished to observe Lexa and Anya handle Marie, both of them were obviously very much attuned to the personality of the child. When she spoke with her mother over the radio the next time, she would make sure to discourage her from the idea to propose a separation between them, bringing Marie alone to the Ark did not seem helpful when both Trikru women seemed to handle Marie just fine instinctively on their own. But she still was not convinced that taking Marie as a part of the army into Azgeda was a good idea, Clarke did not wish to picture what effect coming face to face with the Ice queen could have on the traumatized child.

Anya’s slight shake of her head in silent exasperation without actually reprimanding the child, was proof enough to Clarke, that Marie had somehow managed to have both women wrapped around her little finger with her childish charm effortlessly.

“Are you tired?” Lexa asked the girl when it became obvious that all of them were finished with eating.

Marie shook her head decisively, moving just a little closer to the woman’s body. “Can you read to me?” the child questioned in a soft tone and hopeful eyes.

“Certainly” Lexa agreed easily without missing a beat. Marie frowned when the woman backed out of their embrace and stood from the couch, offering a hand to her and guiding her over to the bed.

Anya had lowly snorted under her breath and mutely watched the commander walk their charge to the bed before she laid down on it and Marie instantly cuddled up to her, waiting expectantly for the woman to start reading. She highly doubted that the girl would not be tired out, the day must have at least been emotionally draining to the child if not physically as well.

“Does that happen often?” Clarke questioned the general in a low tone. She had remained sitting on the couch and her gaze had followed Lexa to her bed, before she looked back to the general facing her.

It did not seem as if Marie noticed them conversing with each other at all, the girl was positively hanging on to Lexa’s every word.

Anya snorted lightly again and although her features looked slightly annoyed, her brown eyes were warm with fondness “It helps to sooth her to sleep, at least initially” she explained with a slight sigh “Lexa had taken up reading to her when she was confined in her quarters upholding the pretence of her severe wounds after Marie healed her”.

Clarke nodded and melancholia washed over her features minutely “My father used to read me to sleep when I was still a kid as well…” It just occurred to her now that she had mostly stopped thinking back to her life on the Ark.

Anya shook her head “If anything we usually tell our young ones story, but they mostly just go to sleep”. She had rarely needed to sooth Lexa or Tris when they had been younger. But Marie had an inherit way of showing what she needed that both of them had changed gradually over time to accommodate the girl’s needs.

“How long does it usually take her to wake up again?” Clarke asked after a moment of silence. Lexa was still occupied with reading to Marie and it looked absolutely adorable how the child was fighting against the sleep pulling at her mind.

Anya’s brows furrowed. She could not give a clear answer to that question any longer. Before her time with the Ice queen the girl’s nightmares had almost died down totally. After her return to Polis the girl had not been open with her nightmares when she was still missing her memories. She had either suffered in silence or had not wanted comfort or sought out Ontari instead. During last night it had felt as if the girl had woken up at least once per hour, but that could have only been her perception. “Often” she answered vaguely “You will certainly see during the night” she predicted voice tinted with tiredness.

Lexa continued to read to Marie for a few moments longer even though the child’s breathing had noticeably evened out some time ago. Carefully the commander slid out of the bed, pulling a fur over the girl’s body and stepped back over to the couch. She smiled softly at Clarke as she sat down close to her, so that their legs were touching.

“What did you mean when you said that you will take the Azgeda prince with you?” Clarke questioned the young leader.

“Roan resides in Polis as a political prisoner” Lexa explained although she was certain that the blonde healer already knew that much “He has provided information about Ontari’s existence before she came into the capitol and he wanted the chance to challenge his mother for the throne in exchange. He can only utter the challenge when he faces his mother in front of witnesses. The war might be the only chance he can get”.

A slight grimace washed over Anya’s features “Marie is right though. Nia will have a back up plan exactly against that”.

Lexa sighed, her lips thinned somewhat “So, you would advise against taking Roan with us?”

Anya shook her head “No, it is a sound plan. Roan would surely make a better king than Nia ever was as a queen. He would surely bring Azgeda back into the coalition as well”.

“How long do you think until the armies are ready to march?” Clarke asked, interrupting the discussion about Roan for now. She was not involved in Skykru’s preparations to join forces with the grounder army, Monty was the official ambassador for Skykru so it was his task now.

“Something between half a moon and a moon until all troops have arrived and can be equipped accordingly” Lexa said voice slightly strained. She knew that it would put a huge burden on the capitol to equip so many warriors and keep them fed.

“That should offer Marie at least some time to feel more comfortable” Clarke commented trying to keep her tone light, she had worried they would march even sooner. Every day the girl could spend in the capitol under a normal routine would be beneficial for her recovery now. 

They spent some more time talking with each other in hushed tones, trying not to wake Marie up. But they could have as well saved their efforts, the girl started to toss and turn under the furs only a short amount of time later, a nightmare obviously keeping her trapped in her mind.

Lexa and Anya both stood from the couch quickly in unison. Clarke followed them with a frown, if she could trust her feeling of time, not even an hour had passed since Marie had fallen asleep, she had not expected for her sleeping problems to be this sever, but it certainly explained why the general had looked so exhausted in the morning.

Clarke walked past the bed into the bathroom after she had collected her nightgown, Lexa had already told her that they usually joined Marie in bed after the child woke for the first time and that she was usually not soothed any other way.

Lexa was already dressed in her sleeping attire and slid into the bed next to Marie, catching the girl’s flailing arms with strong hands and pulling the girl’s smaller body against her own, encasing her in a strong envelope. The commander whispered soothing words into their charge’s ears for a few minutes but only addressing her in her nickname in Trigedasleng seemed able to rouse the child.

Marie’s grey eyes were wild and looked around the room frantically until she recognized that it was Lexa holding her.

Anya had changed into her own sleeping attire and slid into the bed on the other side of Marie and put a hand onto the girl’s back, assuring her silently that she was present in addition.

“Do you wish to tell me what you have dreamed about?” Lexa checked in a soft tone, letting her fingers glide through the girl’s soft hair as she held her close.

Marie’s grey eyes glistened with a sheen of unshed tears “I remembered the twins…” she breathed out and her voice was tinted strongly with horror, while her body shuddered at the lively memory.

Lexa and Anya bandied a silent glance, mutely wondering what their charge was alluding to, but neither of them knew what Marie meant.

“Which twins?” Lexa asked, while her fingers continued their gentle caress, which visibly helped Marie relax with every passing second.

“Have I told you about the training?” Marie retorted, a slight frown on her features as she tried to remember if she might have already spoken about it with Anya, but both women denied. Marie had only scarcely said anything about it and nothing specific so far.

“I was only trained for a few weeks by the royal guard” Marie informed them and although her voice had calmed noticeably, she still held onto Lexa strongly. She looked around shortly when she felt the mattress dip and Clarke joined them in the bed. Marie seemed to contemplate for a moment if she should continue or not, but she spoke up again when Anya started to lightly caress her back in silent encouragement.

“Training started long before dawn and I was trained with other children. Most of them were younger than I was. We had to compete against each other for everything” the child remembered, visibly shuddering “If you lost, you did not get food, you did not get a warm place to sleep or I even saw a girl being forced to stay outside of the fortress in the night. She had frozen to death in the morning…”

Marie trailed off with a far-away look in her grey eyes, obviously lost in her memories for the moment.

Lexa and Anya bandied another silent look. Both of them had already heard enough from Ontari concerning how warriors were trained in Azgeda to already be aware of just how ruthless they were with their children, only the strongest managed to survive the harsh training regiment after all.

“I was excluded from most of the punishments for losing…” Marie picked up again, a frown etched into her features “…I did not understand why, but I guess that the queen must have ordered that I was to survive…” she mused thoughtfully.

Lexa inclined her head in silent agreement. No matter how brief the flash of relieve was within her mind that Marie had been at least slightly protected in the beginning, because there had been no way their charge could have competed fairly with children her own age and won the fight, Lexa still wondered which punishments had been bestowed on the blonde girl by the royal guard.

“I did not realize just how jealous the others were of my privileges…” Marie whispered, the expression on her face still showed just how hard it was for the girl to understand the concept that jealousy could drive true hatred. “They ambushed me in a hall one evening…” Marie shuddered again as she remembered the helpless feeling of being faced by six opponents at once. She had tried to fight against them, but she did not have the slightest bit of a fair chance, it had been Echo who had saved her hide then. “…six of them against me…” Marie breathed out, pressing herself even more closely to Lexa “…I fought as hard as I could, but I did not stand a chance. Echo had heard a struggle on the hall, she chased them away…”

Anya listened to the girl’s tale with a bated breath, feeling sympathy for her charge churn within her.

“…the queen summoned me the next morning. All six of them were there” Marie narrated “I don’t think they expected what the queen said next…” Marie halted shortly as if to gather her breath to continue “…I was to kill all of them. Four had resigned themselves to their fate and did not fight. But two boys, the twins, chose to fight. The queen killed them herself…slowly…” The girl’s voice gave out again and Lexa only tightened her arms around their charge.

Clarke had listened to the girl’s voice with a frown, she had thought of the Trikru as harsh and irresponsible to take children with them into war, but it sounded as if the Ice Nation was ruthless with their own children. She could not even begin to fathom what it must have meant for Marie to be attacked by the children who were trained with her. In her mind they should have probably been friends, like the novitiates were, but Marie’s words were enough to explain that her opinion could not have been more off. She wondered how Marie had found the strength to survive the whole ordeal. She could still remember plunging the knife into Finn’s chest, but having to kill other children simply because you were ordered to, it was no wonder the girl had been so distrustful when she arrived in Polis.

Marie did not seem to expect Lexa to say anything to her narration and the girl seemed utterly content to simply remain cuddled up with the commander, when the woman lowly hummed the melody of the lullaby again and it did not take her long at all to drift off back into slumber.

 

 

Chapter 188

Ontari’s POV

Ontari frowned slightly when she joined the novitiates at the base of the tower. All of them were equipped with a pack as if they had planned on travelling.

No one had told her that this lesson had been expected to be anything special and she had already been confused why she was not going to be training with the general. In the last days she had rarely joined the novitiates in combat training. The general was of the opinion that she already possessed more than enough skills in fighting with a sword or staff and that her skills needed individual training now to make up for what Nia had neglected to have included in her tutelage.

She let her dark eyes travel over the group of novitiates, keeping her expression blank and proud. She was well aware of the suspicious glare Kato was sending her way and she made it a point to glare at him for a few silent moments before she let her gaze continue on. Ontari noticed that the three youngest nightbloods were not part of the assembled group and she internally wondered again what was planned for them now.

Even though the urge to question what was going on might burn in her mind, she would not admit to it now and patiently waited. Ontari could spot several guards watching over the group out of the corner of her eyes, but she could not see one of the flamekeeper nor the commander. 

Ontari’s confusion only increased when she saw Anya step out of the tower, a pack similar to what the others were carrying slung over her shoulder casually, and the general motioned her slightly away from the rest of the novitiates.

Ontari took the pack from the general when she held it towards her and she thought to spot a flash of worry in her brown eyes, before the general spoke up.

“Titus has planned a field trip for all of you” the general explained in a casual tone, but her eyes stared intently at the nightblood girl.

Ontari nodded in silent understanding, that at least explained the need for equipment. Internally she wondered if the general personally had assembled the pack for her. She felt slightly irritated that she had not been told to prepare for a field trip, she would have been more than capable to do so on her own after all.

The thought to go on a field trip with the other novitiates together with the austere flamekeeper did not sit that well with her as well. Ontari would have preferred to have a field exercise with the general and Marie every day, but she knew her opinion would not be asked for now, nor would it matter in any way. She would just need to remember to be wary of the other novitiates, of Kato specifically, she would not put it past the boy to try to “accidentally” have her killed and Ontari was fairly sure that the flamekeeper would not lift a finger to defend her. Darkly the girl mused that the bald man would probably rather help the boy to make sure she perished instead. She could not be sure about the other novitiates though. Ontari was aware that Nymo and Saria were probably closest to Marie and she might have a few positive points with them because of the blonde Sky girl. Aden was by far the noblest and the most honest among the group and he would probably come to her defence, simply because the blonde boy was aware that killing her would not be what the commander wished for; the boy seemed loyal to the point to the Trikru woman after all.

The general’s voice pulled her out of her thoughts “I will remain in the capitol. You are to obey Titus’ commands as if they were uttered by me” the woman said strictly.

Ontari nodded with a mostly blank expression. She still rolled her eyes slightly. What was the general expecting her to do? Run away or cause havoc? If she had wanted that, she would have had more than enough opportunities already.

Anya’s brown eyes turned noticeably harder at Ontari’s reaction “Behave” the general intoned “Your behaviour will reflect back onto me now as well”. Her voice had been tinted with a warning note, which already told Ontari that the woman would be less than pleased to hear negative feedback from the flamekeeper, so she nodded again mutely.

Ontari watched the flamekeeper stride out of the tower a moment later. The bald man was not dressed in his usual robes, but rather light armour which was practical and suited for travel; the whole outfit looked rather weird on him in Ontari’s mind as she had not seen him in anything than his ceremonial clothing.

She looked back up at the general when the woman took a slight step closer to her and her voice was low when she warned “Keep your guard up at all times and return safely”. Anya’s brown eyes had gotten noticeably softer and Ontari thought to detect a little flash of worry in them again. Could it be that the general was as hesitant to watch her leave as Ontari truthfully was to?

The general’s voice turned even lower now and Ontari had to strain her hearing to decipher the words “Be wary of Kato especially. The boy might wish to use the chance to retaliate against you without guards around you all the time.”

Ontari nodded again, she had come to the same conclusion on her own already. She still felt weirdly touched at the general’s show of care. It seemed that the Trikru woman truly was taking this change of relationship between them serious. Ontari internally hoped that Anya would really see her as her real second unconnected from Marie. She did not understand totally why she was longing for this, if she dared to name it, approval from the Trikru woman, but for some weird reason she did and even this fact irked her to no end.

“Do not try to challenge Kato or Titus” Anya continued to caution the nightblood girl in a hushed tone “The field trip is not planned to last longer than a day or two, three at most”.

Ontari inclined her head one more time and was surprised again when Anya slightly squeezed her shoulder before she almost gently nudged her in the direction to join back with the others without another word. She could still see the general from the corner of her eyes, the woman had stayed at the entrance of the tower and seemed intent to wait for their departure.

Ontari remained at the edge of the group of the novitiates, she had still not found any true connection to them and she was still steadfast in the opinion that it was not necessary for her to befriend even one of them. Now, being faced with the prospect of spending a prolonged time with them and only Titus, she internally regretted that she had not at least tried to be a little friendlier to them. In most of the interactions she had had with the other nightbloods, Marie had been a sort of liaison between them, easing the tense contact with her natural talkativeness.

 She listened to Titus explain to the others of what he had planned. The flamekeeper had hidden a token in the woods surrounding Polis, in the direction of the Boat People. It was obvious to Ontari that their way should lead them as far from possible Ice Nation soldiers who could have tried to cross the border further north. They should pair off into groups of three and the flamekeeper had already decided for Ontari and Aden to work alone, as they were the oldest. Internally Ontari breathed a sigh of relieve, it would have been more difficult to have to work with Kato in a group and she was fairly certain that Aden would not try to intentionally harm her.

Their packs should contain a map which was supposed to hold enough clues for them to find the token. It was supposed to be a competition and the group who found the token first was the winner. Titus explained that they were allowed to try to intercept the other groups, the only thing he clearly pointed out as forbidden was to kill another of the nightbloods.

Thalu, June and Kato joined together in one group, which left Nymo, Saria and Gally as the third group. Titus would apparently guide them out of Polis to a starting point and he would afterwards travel closely behind all the groups.

Ontari’s brows furrowed slightly. She had heard the general discuss with the commander about an increasing number of bandits roaming the woods surrounding Polis. She was not sure if they had already been eliminated or driven further away from the capitol, but they should surely keep their eyes open to strangers as well. Somehow, she highly doubted that there would not be other guards shadowing them unobtrusively. The commander had efficiently allowed most of the conclave to leave the capitol and there would be no one left to ascend after her immediately, if they were all killed in the next days. The other nightbloods who remained in Polis were still not old enough to compete in a conclave officially.

She was surprised when Aden readily stepped up closer to her, obviously intent to start strategizing right from the beginning. Ontari could already hear the other novitiates starting to plot on how they wanted to operate as soon as they reached the starting point. She would have expected to see at least some hesitation in the boy’s blue eyes, but he seemed honestly eager to start with the exercise. Ontari could even understand the other’s enthusiasm to a certain point, it seemed that the novitiates rarely were allowed to leave the walls of Polis, so every trip would be like a little adventure to them.

Ontari lightly shook her head when the sandy blonde boy opened his mouth and she motioned over to the others in silence. Aden seemed to have understood what she wanted to communicate, his blue eyes widened subtly for a second, before he inclined his head and while still holding up eye contact with Ontari the boy obviously now also listened to the others scheming.

They fell into step next to each other when Titus called out to them to get moving. Ontari subtly let her eyes return to the base of the tower once, finding the general’s gaze hefted on herself, before the general turned on her heels and returned inside.

The trek to the starting point took them the better part of the morning. Titus halted their hike on a clearing and pointed out a few landmarks which should guide them backwards to the starting point in the case they lost their expected path and had to start over again.

Ontari listened to his words intently. She had already noticed that her assumptions about guards following them was correct, they kept high in the trees and remained a distance away, but they were not totally out of earshot. Ontari was internally truly grateful that the general had insisted to start on teaching her the finer points of the natural sounds of the woods around them. She highly doubted that any of the other novitiates had even realized yet that they were being followed at all.

On their hike she had had heard quiet a lot of the plans of the other two groups already. Saria seemed intent to keep closely together with Nymo and Gally, the two boys had appeared content to let the older girl make the decisions for their group for now, obviously trusting in her superior experience. It worried her slightly to hear June and Thalu agree with Kato that they could as well split up. The suggestion had been made by Kato and Ontari was immediately suspicious if the boy simply planned to ambush her. She felt a little worry that Aden would now be included in their private quarrel.

Titus had not told them what else would be within their packs, so Ontari had planned to get away from the others, together with Aden, and first figure out if they would need to search for water first.

The blonde boy followed her into the tree line willingly, but he stopped in his tracks once they had truly left the clearing behind.

With a slight flash of annoyance at hearing his footsteps halt behind her, Ontari turned around sharply.

“So?” Aden addressed her, slight apprehension was visible on his features now and he seemed uneasy.

Ontari frowned visibly, the boy had seemed fine enough to be joined into a group with her. But it now seemed as if the boy had just upheld pretence, she did not know if he might have done it for her sake, but she somehow highly doubted that.

She listened to the sounds of the other nightbloods, but it seemed they were all moving ahead of them, so she decided that they might as well linger for a moment longer and inspect their supplies and more importantly look at the map. Unfortunately, Ontari was not familiar with the land of the Boat People, so she doubted that she would recognize any landscapes there.

Aden seemed to be annoyed with every second of silence ticking by and his lips thinned as he crossed his arms over his chest “So, you are not going to talk to me at all?” he jeered.

Ontari openly rolled her eyes, listening to quietening sounds of the other nightbloods for a moment, before she shook her head “I am going to talk to you, of course, working with you would be made so much more complicated otherwise” she commented with a slightly raised brow. Internally she lightly chided herself, she should be making even a little effort to get along with the blonde boy and not antagonize him further. But it was hard not to fall back into long learned habits.

Aden’s lips thinned even further and he was angrily glaring at the Ice Nation nightblood, from the way his blue eyes flicked around them, Ontari judged that he was seriously contemplating leaving her and trying to locate the token on his own.

Ontari sighed under her breath and tried for a friendlier tone “Sit” she asked him, as she folded her own legs beneath her self and opened her own pack, taking out all the items slowly and distributing them around herself. “I am sorry, alright?” she addressed him again a little impatiently when the boy still remained standing indecisively.

It took Aden another beat before he sat down facing her, but he did follow her example and opened his own pack. “So, you are not going to try anything?” the boy had the nerve to ask and although his voice seemed carefully measure, his blue eyes betrayed the lingering worry and suspicion.

Ontari felt her own anger flare minutely, but she squashed it down decisively. She took a calming breath with closed eyes and she tried to answer the other nightblood in an honest tone with an open expression “No, I shall not. I pledged myself to the commander, just like you did after all.”

Aden inclined his head in silent agreement, but after a moment of silence he added “Still, you arrived in the capitol with the intent to kill all of us, including Lexa”.

Ontari sighed, she still nodded in acknowledgement, but she did not manage to keep the glare from her features. “I did” she agreed bitingly “But I had more than enough chances to try again, if I had truly wished” she added after a second and her gaze was challenging.

Aden seemed to contemplate her words for a moment. Ontari mused that the boy was probably trying to figure out which chances she might have meant. If exercised correctly there had indeed been more than one instance where she might have been successful to assassinate the rest of the conclave. “I find it rather hard to believe that your motivations have changed so starkly” the boy finally uttered, although he did not seek eye contact with her.

Ontari bit back another sigh. She had thought that the other nightbloods had accepted her integration by now, she had only been aware of Kato openly being against her, but it had probably been foolish to assume that the rest was alright with the commander’s decision simply because they had not articulated their disagreement.

She fished an empty water skin out of her pack and sighed again. She had been correct to check their supplies first. They had been on their hike for several hours already and none of them had had anything to drink yet, they would need to prioritise to search for water and possible hunt or scavenge food as well.

“Believe it or not” Ontari settled on in a snappish tone, internally she had to recognize that she was slightly hurt to see the blonde boy react in such a way. Aden was surely the most loyal to Lexa and she had assumed that at least he would be accepting of the commander’s opinion as the right one. “If you want to make the hike on your own, be my guest” she added, the anger was boiling more strongly in her veins now and she was trying hard not to totally snap at the other boy.

It hurt more than she cared to admit, even to herself, to see the boy actually considering her offer. Grinding her teeth together in silent agitation, Ontari hurried herself to stuff everything back into her pack and she stood up abruptly, shouldering the bag and intent on storming off on her own. She was convinced that she did not need the other boy, she was versed enough with navigating through the woods on her own. She would also manage to find water and food on her own. The only thing which would be made so much harder, was that she could not exchange guard duty with someone and would need to stay alert herself the whole night.

Aden’s voice stopped her in her tracks abruptly, Ontari had already turned away from the boy and was in the process of deciding into which direction she wanted to start. “Wait, alright?!” the boy called behind her. He had stood up quickly as well and the hand he put onto her upper arm to physically hold her back, was hesitant.

A slight grimace was on his features as he scratched the back of his head with his other hand, tousling his sandy blonde locks, when Ontari turned back around to face him.

“I know that I should believe Heda’s words regarding your loyalty” Aden commented slightly reluctant, but his features were apologetic “I do not need to truly trust you…” he continued.

Ontari’s eyes narrowed angrily and she shrugged off the boy’s hand from her arm.

“I do not trust you yet” Aden clarified quickly “None of us have a reason to” he added.

Ontari visibly ground her teeth together, although she knew that the boy was correct, she had not made any effort to connect with any of them and they were rightful to hold on to their distrust.

“You have not made exactly an effort to be liked by any of us” Aden accused the other nightblood.

Reluctantly Ontari inclined her head “No, I have certainly not” she agreed in a low tone.

“For some weird reason, none of us understand, Marie has an unshakable trust in you” Aden continued “I shall trust her judgment, that you are deserving of that”.

Ontari raised a doubtful brow at the blonde boy, internally surprised by the change of the discussion. A few months ago, Ontari would have been quick to point out, that Marie’s judgment was apparently more than a little flawed when it came to her and others, who should have been distrusted. She still did not fully understand the younger girl’s thinking process, but she would not disagree that she cared for the girl, she had returned to Nia for her after all.

A silent kind of understanding seemed to settle between them, when they nodded at each other. Aden held up the map, which had been in his pack “Where shall we start looking?” he asked with a slight twinkle to his blue eyes.

 

Chapter 189

Ontari and Aden inspected the map together. The boy seemed solely focused on the way towards the token.

Ontari shook her head in exasperation “We have neither water nor anything to eat within our supplies. It is already way past midday; garnering supplies should be our first priority” she said strongly.

Aden nodded after a moment of silent contemplation. He had been on a field trip before, together with Kato, Saria and Thalu. They had been separated back then and their only task had been to survive in the woods for five days on their own. He had had more difficulties to locate water and hunt for his food than he would have expected and he could still vividly remember what it had felt like to become dehydrated.

The only problem was, that no stream had been included in their map and he could not remember how long ago it had been when they had passed the last small river, but it must have been too long ago already to turn backwards now.

“We will need to keep watch for Kato” Aden said into the silence. He followed Ontari’s lead, he did not know how vast the other nightblood’s education might have been, but the girl did not seem uncertain and she seemed to be following something intently.

Ontari inclined her head with a slight sigh, she had known that already.

“I do not know if he might have managed to convince others of his opinion” the blonde boy added. During the last days Kato had tried time and time again to persuade the rest of the conclave that even entertaining the idea of trusting the Ice Nation nightblood was foolish. The other boy was steadfast in his opinion that it would be best if they killed Ontari when they had the chance, before the girl would retaliate against any of them.

“So, you think it likely that he will try to attack me?” Ontari retorted. She was well aware that the other boy would have heard much more of Kato’s opinion in the privacy of their shared quarters.

Aden agreed almost instantly “He would probably regard it as foolish not to try”.

Ontari snorted under her breath “He would be foolish to try”. She was fairly certain that the commander would have insisted on a few extra guards to shadow her personally. Ontari was not one hundred percent sure, if Lexa truly believed in her changed attitude or if the guards were supposed to make sure that she would not flee or harm one of the other novitiates, but it would guarantee her at least a certain amount of security as well.

“You should not underestimate Kato” Aden commented in a cautious tone.

“Believe me, I do not” Ontari retorted. She would not make the mistake of underestimating any of the other novitiates simply because she was older than all of them, she may be stronger physically in comparison to almost all of them. But she knew that determination as a driving force should not be disregarded. If Aden’s warning was correct, she would even need to anticipate that Kato could have manage to find supporters amongst the novitiates and then anything would be possible. “But the guards will surely have been ordered to keep us from killing each other or to interfere if life threatening situations arise.”

Aden frowned visibly and his blue eyes darted around them as if he was searching for possible guards hidden between the trees.

Ontari snorted under her breath in disbelief, the boy had obviously not truly not been away of the guard’s circling around them. Aden had been born into Trikru, so he should have been the one most familiar with the woods and if even he had not noticed anything, Ontari was now certain that the others were not aware of the presence of the guards as well, which could only work in her favour.

“You are not searching high enough” she commented with a slight role of her dark eyes as she led them on. Ontari was following the slight change of plant cover. She would remember to tell the general how helpful her lessons had already proven to be once they returned to the capitol. She had only begrudgingly listened to the general’s words regarding the finer details of the woods. Ontari had been doubtful at best that she would ever be needing such a lesson, but now it seemed as if the last lessons of the general had all aimed to specifically hone her skills for this field exercise.

Aden’s blue eyes now shifted higher into the trees around them, but it was obvious that he still failed to spot the guards which were actually close enough for him to notice.

“Look at the leaves and see their movement in the wind” Ontari instructed, she had slowed her steps, trying to give the boy a fair opportunity to follow her words. “Now look for breaks in this pattern. They are either caused by animals or guards following us. Their size gives them away” Ontari added after a moment when she saw Aden truly doing as she had said.

Aden seemed openly impressed when he finally could detect what Ontari had noticed all along. “Anya must have taught you quiet a lot already” the blonde boy commented in a slightly awed tone.

Ontari inclined her head “I am leading us towards a stream. It cannot be far now” she added as an explanation. She felt somehow uneasy under the boy’s blue-eyed stare now.

“Heda must have seen something in you for Anya to take you as her second” Aden commented out of the blue after a few minutes of walking side by side in silence. It almost seemed as if the boy was a little unnerved by her continued silence.

Ontari frowned slightly, but she did not know what to say to the other boy, so she remained silent. She was still wondering herself what might have prompted the change, neither of the other novitiates were functioning as a second to anyone and it felt like a sort of privilege.

“I hope I will get a first soon as well” Aden uttered thoughtfully with hope shining in his blue eyes.

“It is unusual for a nightblood to be a second?” Ontari questioned with genuine interest. She knew that she was not skilled at the art of conversation at all and she would have been perfectly content to simply go through this field exercise without any kind of small talk, but it was obvious already that Aden was not satisfied with walking in silence. Maybe the other boy was even a little interested into who she truly was, Ontari mused internally.

“Not necessarily” Aden answered thoughtfully “You know that Heda was Anya’s second before as well. Other nightbloods have also had firsts in the past, but it is not a really common occurrence either. Heda has been in her position for quiet many years already now, so we are getting older as well. Heda said that the lessons she can teach to us will run out eventually and that it will be time for us to broad our experiences”.

Ontari listened to his explanation with a little confusion. There was a certain truth in his words. Lexa had been commander for longer now already than the last commanders had managed to survive in their function. Ontari could already say that being mentored by a first was vastly different from the lessons they received from the flamekeeper.

“Sounds reasonable” she commented after a beat of silence. Ontari strained her ears and her lips pulled into a slight smile when she noticed the sounds of sloshing water, she had succeeded in guiding them towards a water source.

Ontari felt a small surge of pride when they were both able to fill their empty water skins with fresh water that should last them for a day at least, if they were careful with it maybe even two days. Both of them drank their fill directly from the stream and Ontari’s smile was genuine when she met Aden’s gaze.

“You certainly are very skilled” the sandy haired boy complimented the other nightblood. Even if he did not have any real measures of trust yet for the girl, he would at least give her the benefit of doubt. Aden knew that they could be successful in their task if they worked together.

Ontari inclined her head in silent agreement. She did not know for certain why, but her cheeks felt slightly heated and she was certain that a faint blush was dusting over them. She quickly averted her gaze “We should continue. The others will have already covered a larger distance” Ontari hurried to say leading on blindly.

She faintly heard Aden breath out a laugh behind herself and she whirled back around glaring at him.

The boy held up his hands in an apologetic gesture, his face still showed his amusement, but it did not appear that he was evilly laughing at her. Aden held up the map again “We should probably first check where we should head towards” it was obvious the boy tried to keep his tone even, but the amusement was still evident.

“Right” Ontari agreed begrudgingly and stepped back closer to the boy peering at the map in his hands. Their starting point had fortunately been marked in the map, but it confused her slightly that the stream had not been noted down at all, it was not even a really small stream either.

“I think the token is at the coast” Aden proclaimed after a few moments of silence. While Ontari had focused on the map and had searched for certain landmarks she was familiar with, Aden had focused on the hints noted down at the side of the map, it was more a riddle than actual hints.

Ontari had read over the riddle once and found her head spinning as a result. She nodded cautiously, she would have preferred to work solely with the map, but it was crudely made and the missing stream made her wonder what else could all have been left out. She was cautious to trust Aden’s words, but with no other really better option, she would have to go with it. Ontari frowned slightly “Do you know where this stream originates from?” she wondered.

Aden shook his head immediately. Although he spent nearly all of his life in Polis, he was not that familiar with the lands surrounding it. But he did know that streams usually either originated either from mountains or the sea. So there consequently was a huge chance that following the stream would lead them towards the coast.

“We should follow it” Ontari suggested after another moment, as she had apparently come to the same conclusion.

They travelled some time in companiable silence as Ontari set their tempo. When the nightblood girl noticed that it already started to get darker, she slowed them down, she could already feel hunger gnaw at her inside and she highly doubted Aden was faring any better. She had hoped that they would encounter something to eat without purposefully setting out to search for food, but apparently, she had been wrong in her assumption.

“We have neglected to gather food” Ontari commented with her voice tinted with annoyance.

Aden nodded with a frown, he had felt his hunger building for some time now, but he was certain that they would do fine without food for the night as well. Finding shelter would be important as well or the night could get very uncomfortable and dangerous.

Ontari spotted some tracks of what appeared to have been rabbits and fortunately they seemed to be fresh.

It was obvious that they were both indecisive about whether to separate or not. But while Ontari was armed with two daggers and her sword, Aden only carried a sword. Hunting with a sword was impractical, daggers could at least be thrown at smaller prey. So, they agreed that Ontari would try to locate the rabbits on her own, while Aden remained near the stream and tried to set up a makeshift camp for the night.

Ontari followed the tracks of the rabbits cautiously. She tried to strain her ears for the sounds surrounding her. She needed to listen if they might be running into the other novitiates, possibly even Kato, or if bigger animals might already be circling around them.

It seemed that she was blessed by fate this evening and locating the rabbits did not take her long. She managed to kill two of them by throwing both her daggers simultaneously. The general would probably be slightly proud to hear that her target training was already paying off, or at least a small part of Ontari hoped that she would.

She returned quickly to the place where she had separated from Aden. Ontari frowned slightly when she could not spot the blonde boy, but it was easy enough to pick up the tracks he had left behind. They boy had already been busy in her absence and their makeshift camp was nearly finished. Aden had even built a sort of shelter from larger sticks and covered them with some sort of fern. The space beneath was narrow and they would have to squish close to each other, but they would be warded off from some of the wind.

A small fire was already burning and Aden looked genuinely pleased to spot the two dead rabbits in Ontari’s hands. It surprised her slightly when the blonde boy grimaced in open disgust when she gutted the animals quickly.

“I have never liked to see that” Aden admitted without Ontari actually asking for an explanation.

Ontari snorted under her breath “You do not like seeing blood?” she asked with a slight tease colouring her tone.

Aden rolled his eyes “I do not have a problem with blood…” he explained and added a little detail after a beat of silence “…only with innards”.

Ontari frowned slightly, she had already seen her fair share of innards from other humans already and the sight did not bother her. It would certainly not serve Aden well if he were to march into his real first war and would be so openly disgusted by what he was faced with.

“Have you ever been in a real battle?” Aden questioned after a moment of silence. The bodies of the rabbits were already placed over the fire to be roasted, but they would take a few moments until they were ready to eat.

Ontari inclined her head “Nothing which would deserve to be labelled a true battle, but skirmishes” she proclaimed. The royal guard had sometimes been tasked to destroy a whole village if there had been rumour that they were disloyal to the queen and Ontari still remembered the times before the coalition had been built. Little skirmishes had regularly taken place on the border of Azgeda and Trikru and she had been allowed to accompany the royal guard once the queen had deemed her old enough.

“Lexa said that she contemplates to allow me to join the army when they march into Azgeda” Aden said after another pause.

Ontari unobtrusively watched the other boy’s features to get an indication on his feelings. His voice had sounded indecisive and the same conflict was marring his expression. “You do not wish to?” she asked finally in a carefully calm tone. Ontari had not expected to truly talk with Aden during their field trip, but it seemed the boy was intent to get to know her now. It was not her intention to affront the other boy and they were not exactly friends, she found it hard enough to simply talk with Marie, although she thought that she had gotten better at it. But speaking with Aden was different and she did not know the exact rules of this conversation now which made her treat ever so careful.

Aden sighed and he seemed to contemplate for a moment if it was wise to open up to the other nightblood.

Ontari waited patiently for the boy to make up his mind as she tented to the rabbits, making sure they would not burn.

“I know that we have been prepared our whole lives for the possibility of rising as the commander” Aden said and his blue eyes seemed slightly guilty “But I still cannot help to be afraid of what a war truly looks like. I have heard stories of course, many at that. But I do not think that it can compare to the reality of it. Being in combat training is different than a real battle, I know that…”

Ontari inclined her head and she sorted through her thoughts for a moment before she said “You are right. Training is vastly different from a true battle. Training is also different from a fight to death.”

Aden nodded, he had witnessed the last conclave, so he was well aware of that. He had never voice it out loud, but he was deathly afraid of the prospect of having to compete in the next conclave. Knowing that he would be faced with the novitiates with whom he had grown up as his brothers and sisters was an unbearable thought and he no idea how Lexa had managed to remain so strong through it. Even though he not seen six summers yet, he could vividly remember the conclave. Not all of the novitiates had chosen to really face their opponents, two of the younger ones had turned their swords against themselves. Aden could still remember Titus’ voice telling him that choosing this fate was a shame to their nightblood, but he could sympathise with them.

“Have you thought about the conclave?” Aden asked, voice barely above a whisper.

Ontari looked up from the rabbits and shrugged her shoulders “Not truly. But I have already been in more than one fight to the death” she said vaguely. Just as Marie had been subjected to the normal training regiment under the royal guard, she had been subjected to it in the past as well.

“I have seen the last conclave” Aden informed the other nightblood girl.

“You were too young to compete then?” Ontari commented calmly and took the rabbits out of the fire.

Aden nodded and gratefully took one of the rabbits.

“We should save some meat for the morning” Ontari said before the boy could start to eat.

Aden nodded again, he was truly surprised to notice just how thoughtful the Ice Nation nightblood could be. He had anticipated there was not much more to her than brute strength and arrogance, but apparently, he had been wrong.

 

 

Chapter 190

It did not take long for the rest of the sun to vanish and the forest fell into darkness around them. Ontari frowned at the apparent uneasiness marring Aden’s features. It was obvious that the other nightblood was skittish in these surroundings.

Ontari subtly rolled her eyes, although she was fairly certain that the boy would not be able to see it anyway. The campfire Aden had built was rather small and only gave off very little actual light, casting them into dancing shadows. Her frown deepened when the blonde boy startled visibly at a cracking noise resonating not too far away from their makeshift camp.

Ontari strained her ears if the sound would repeat itself or if it might just have been caused by an animal. When she was unable to detect any other unusual sounds for several moments, Ontari relaxed again and turned her dark eyes back towards Aden before she asked “How old where you when you were brought into Polis?”

“Around two summers” Aden answered immediately a slightly questioning expression on his young features.

Internally Ontari mused that it was no wonder for the blonde boy to feel uncomfortable in the open in a forest like that. If he had been brought to Polis so early, he would probably not remember much of his life before and Ontari had seen how protected and almost secluded the nightbloods were educated in the tower. “Do you remember anything from before?” Ontari asked; she had wanted to ask if Aden remembered anything of his parents, but changed the question in the last seconds.

Aden’s face showed a neutral expression as he shook his head and there was no judgment in his tone “Polis is my home”.

Ontari inclined her head in silent understanding, as she glanced over at the boy. Aden seemed fairly awake and there were no signs of fatigue on his features, but Ontari was unsure if it was wise to trust him with guarding both of them; she highly doubted Aden had done any kind of guard duty before. If Lexa would ask her on her opinion again of having a first as a nightblood, she would definitely point out that the education in the tower was lacking as well, if they did not include more realistic practices. Teaching someone to win in a combat challenge and how to deal with ambassadors was only a part of what a commander needed to be after all.

Ontari sighed under her breath, although she still regarded trusting Aden to guard them as a liability, she knew that exhaustion would catch up with her as well and she would do well to catch as much rest now as possible, to take over for the rest of the night. “You will take the first watch” Ontari proclaimed in a strong tone and she waited only for a moment before she simply lied down, her back facing to the nightblood boy.

Ontari closed her eyes and waited for sleep to claim her senses, but the sounds of Aden apparently searching through one of their packs kept her alert. She was internally debating on turning around again and snapping at the boy to just sit still when she suddenly felt a coarse blanket being placed over her body and Aden’s shuffling noises ceased immediately after.

Internally Ontari was deeply shocked by this kind gesture. She had seen a blanket when she had roamed through her own pack, but it was not cold enough that she would definitely freeze without one. Still debating in her thoughts if she should formulate her gratitude, Ontari drifted off into sleep.

When she woke up some time later it was to the sound of snoring coming from Aden. Ontari internally coursed herself a fool for trusting in the boy’s ability to guard them and Aden a fool for falling asleep during guard duty. They were lucky that no predators had caught them unaware and Ontari had no way of knowing for just how long Aden had been asleep as well.

Grumbling under her breath, Ontari rose from under the thin blanket and went a short distance away from their makeshift camp. A short glance over her shoulder back at Aden told her that the boy had not woken from the slight rustling noises she had made; what a grand guard the other nightblood made, she mused sarcastically.

Ontari hurried to relieve herself out of sight from Aden. When she redressed herself, she suddenly heard the scrunch of a boot snapping twigs under them. Ontari whiled around to the origin of the sound. She froze for the fraction of a second when she was fazed with a warrior.

In the dim light she could barely make out his features, but what she could see was the red paint smeared over his face. Behind herself she noticed movements from the corner of her eyes as well, telling her that the bandit was not alone.

Where the hell were the guards that were supposed to have watched over them and probably prevent something like this from happening, Ontari wondered internally. But she quickly shook such thoughts from her mind, solely focusing on her opponents instead, she could not allow herself such distracting thoughts at this moment.

Internally she cursed herself a fool when her hands went to her hip and came back empty. She had left her sword next to Aden and was only armed with her dagger now.

“What are an Ice Nation girl and a Trikru boy doing alone in the woods together?” the man facing her drawled.

“They must be important” the one behind Ontari added.

She frowned slightly, gripping her dagger in a defensive stance. The bandits had probably already taken out all the guards which had followed them. A small part of her hoped that the guards were simply searching for reinforcement, but somehow, she doubted that.

Ontari stole a glance over her shoulder at Aden and when she spotted two more warriors approaching the still sleeping boy, she made a quick decision and loudly called out to the boy, waking him up.

It seemed to take Aden only the blink of a second to notice the mortal danger they were in.

“They plan to fight” one of those standing closer to Aden drawled.

“How sweet” the man directly opposite of Ontari commented his voice dripping with sarcasm, as he grabbed his own sword.

Ontari dropped lower in a fighting stance and she hoped that Aden would be able to hold himself against the two bandits facing the boy. Ontari had no way of telling just how skilled her own opponents were.

Both of them were easily double her size and weight, so she had to hope that she could overpower them with her speed and agility. She would have had an easier time with her sword and she was suddenly glad that the general had insisted on honing her skills with all weapons.

The bandit facing her was armed with a sword, while the one behind her had an axe in his hands.

Ontari quickly decided to take out the one with the sword first. Trusting in her newly improved skills, she hastily took aim and threw the dagger at the man. It landed directly in the middle of his neck with a thudding sound.

A slight smirk tugged at her lips as the man fell to his knees after he had instinctively taken out the dagger. Blood gushed out of his throat quickly and his futile attempts to stop the bleeding was almost pitying to watch.

Ontari barely spared him more than a glance as she quickly crouched down and took up the man’s sword and reclaimed her dagger.

She turned around in one smooth motion and faced the second warrior. It was obvious that the man was warned of her skill now, but anger was contorting his features into a vicious snarl.

Ontari circled around the warrior, he seemed to want to wait her out not making an attack himself. The sound of steel clashing against each other, forced Ontari into action. She doubted that the commander and general would be pleased with her, if she did not try to help Aden.

A pained hiss resonated from Aden’s direction and a quick glance told Ontari that the boy had suffered a hit on one of his legs.

Ontari made her move in donning out a quick succession of various hits. To her utter dismay, the warrior facing her seemed truly skilled with his axe and she had not managed to inflict more than a few scratches with her efforts.

She gripped the handle of the sword tighter, dropping lower into her stance and doubled her efforts. She needed to get closer to him to be able to inflict a mortal wound.

The surge of relieve she felt when she was able to drive her sword through the bandit’s midriff was short lived, when pain filtered into her mind. She might have managed to kill the bandit, but he had also managed to hit her shoulder with his axe. Black blood was smeared over its steel, testament to her wound.

Ontari simply blocked out the pain momentarily, stepping over the man’s corpse, she hurried over to Aden, pushing her sword into the back of the last man standing.

“How deep is it?” she asked the other nightblood, although she had tried to keep the annoyance from her tone, she knew that the question hade come out more as a snarl. If Aden had done his guard duty correctly, they would not have been caught so unaware by the bandits.

“Deep” Aden assessed in a pained tone. It was obvious quickly that the boy was shocked by what had happened. His fingers were shaking and he looked deathly pale.

Ontari did not know if his shock stemmed from his pain the wound on his leg was probably causing or from the adrenaline now leaving his system. She completely ignored her own bleeding shoulder, as she walked a slight distance around their makeshift camp, trying to make sure that there were not more bandits lurking around too closely, just waiting to attack and finish what their fellows had failed to accomplish.

Aden was sitting next to their small fire, gingerly inspecting the wound on his leg, when Ontari returned with fast strides.

“There do not seem to be more of them in close proximity” Ontari told the blonde boy. The gash on his leg was long and fairly deep, it would not help much to burn it shut. They could just bandage it and try to make their way back towards Polis and hopefully encounter guards on their path. “I have found three dead guard and other dead bandits, by the way” she added nonchalantly.

Aden’s blue eyes widened visible at this piece of information and fear seemed to flash through them. It was reasonable to assume that more bandits were roaming through the woods around them and they needed to get moving as soon as possible.

Ontari crouched down next to the blonde boy, took her thin blanket and quickly ripped it into thinner stripes. She bit her tongue to keep in the hiss wanting to bubble from her lips at the jostlement of her own injury. Their bags had not contained any healing supplies, so the blanket would have to do. With strong hands Ontari wound the stripes around Aden’s leg, trying to staunch the bleeding. Judging from the pained grimace on the boy’s face, Ontari hoped that she had not applied the bandage too tightly.

“We need to get moving” Ontari harshly addressed the younger boy. She would admit freely that the other nightblood had held himself well in the fight, but he seemed almost paralyzed now.

Her harsh tone must have snapped Aden out of his shocked state and he pulled to his feet with obvious difficulties.

“You are injured as well” was the first thing Aden said, when he noticed the shine of blood on Ontari’s light armour. His voice had a strange quality to it and he looked wobbly on his feet, biting his lips against the pain shooting through his leg.

“We need to get moving” Ontari repeated, a little more forcefully. She hoped that her own injury was not deep enough to need immediate attention. She highly doubted it would qualify to be sealed shut by a heated blade either, so there was not much they could anyway. To emphasise her words, Ontari stomped out their little fire and took her own bag over her uninjured shoulder. She did not need a map to know in which direction they needed to head off to get to Polis.

She lowly cursed under her breath when Aden started to stumble after a few steps. Bracing herself and grinding her teeth together, Ontari switched the bag to her other shoulder and pulled Aden’s arm over her now freed uninjured shoulder, supporting the boy’s faltering steps.

“We are moving in the wrong direction” Aden commented after long moments of silence and a frown was etched on his features. The boy still looked paler than what would have been considered healthy, but the bandage Ontari had applied did not look completely soaked in black blood. “The token…”

“Forget about the token” Ontari cut him off in an acidic tone. Supporting the other boy was aggravating her own wound and she doubted that the blonde boy was paying too much attention to their surroundings, so she tried to keep her eyes and ears open to who might linger in the trees.

“How could this happen anyway?” Aden mused and his tone sounded so genuinely confused, that Ontari rolled her eyes.

She snorted under her breath “It is easy to be caught off guard, if the one who was supposed to do the guarding, slept”. Ontari was aware that being angry with the blonde boy would do nothing to change their current situation, so she tried to hold her righteous anger at bay.

“I did not sleep” Aden grumbled defensively.

Ontari rolled her eyes again “So, you snore when you are awake then?” she snarked.

When the boy remained silent for a few moments and his expression was marred with guilt, Ontari added “Thought so. You did not even wake, when I stood up”.

Ontari waved off the boy’s feeble attempt to apologize “Learn something from it instead” she countered. Internally she mused since when she had begun to quote the commander, as she was sure the Trikru woman had instilled in one of their lessons to learn from your mistakes rather than be sorry for them. Without the three guards, who had already taken out eleven bandits, before their own deaths, Ontari was sure they would not have stood the sliver of a chance against fifteen of the fully armed bandits.

Ontari hoped that it would not take too long for them to run into other guards and she almost desperately pleaded that there would not be more bandits lurking around. Both of them were in no position to fight off more than a handful of other opponents. She knew that se was pushing Aden into a harsh pace, not caring for his injury, but both of their lives were on line now. Thankfully Aden did not once utter any complaints and silently endured his fate.

She had no idea for how long they had already been walking, when Aden stumbled again. His foot must have get caught in a root. The suddenness of his tugging brought both of them tumbling to the ground with pained grunts.

Ontari did not even bother to take up the bag again and urged Aden to leave his behind as well. She took a moment to gather her breath, before she helped the other nightblood back to his feet. It was still dark around them, so it was still in the middle of the night and it worried Ontari that they had not encountered any guards yet.

Without the weight of the bags weighing both of them down, they could move at least a little easier, although Aden still required assistance to stay on his feet.

Ontari was breathing heavy and her eyes had started to have difficulties to truly stay focused on their surroundings, when suddenly a figure dropped out of a tree directly in front of them. Ontari had truly never been more relived at the sight of a Trikru warrior and she quickly told him that they had encountered bandits and that the guards who had followed them had been killed.

She was even more relieved when the man took over Aden and she could not stop the pained grimace contorting her features nor the pained hiss as she gingerly moved her injured shoulder.

Thankfully it seemed that the commander had planned for the case that one of the novitiates would get seriously wounded and only another short distance away a few guards had made their own makeshift camp for the night and a healer was among them.

“You could have just let the bandits kill me” Aden said, after the healer had tented to his leg and finished with Ontari’s shoulder as well. A tent had been erected for them quickly and both could lie down at comfortable furs now. “Have one less as competition later” the blonde added, as he laid down.

Although Aden was not directly facing her, Ontari could still see that his blue eyes were turned into her direction. She sighed under her breath, in truth she had not even contemplated to not aid the other nightblood. “Be grateful I did not” was the only thing she offered, before she laid down as well and immediately closed her eyes. Supporting Aden on the way had been exhausting and the blonde boy was much heavier than his figure would have eluded to assume. They had both been given a tonic to ward off infection and something against the pain. Ontari could already feel the numbing effects which was starting to slow her thoughts and she knew it would only take a few moments to drift off into sleep.

In the morning Ontari found it hard to decipher the blonde boy’s mood. He had barely said more than a few words to her and he appeared lost in his own thoughts. She frowned when she noticed his slumped shoulders and his almost crestfallen expression.

“You are aware that not finding the token is not the end of the world?” Ontari asked cautiously, keeping her hands busy with rearranging her hair and not really looking at the other nightblood.

“I am aware” came the slightly clipped response.

Ontari narrowed her eyes at the other boy and shrugged “Have it your way” she said and stood up to leave the tent. Aden’s tentative voice stopped her in her tracks.

“I know that we failed the task set out for us, but…” the boy paused and Ontari turned around slightly so that she could look at him “…what is worse, is that I failed Heda’s expectations”.

Ontari’s expression turned slightly kinder, but she had no idea what to tell the blonde boy. It did not seem as if he expected her to say anything either, as Aden resumed speaking only a short moment later.

“Before you came to Polis, Heda always said that I was the most likely to succeed in the conclave and to become her successor” Aden informed the Ice Nation nightblood, his voice was laced with the disappointment he must be feeling for himself. He snorted slightly and frustration was evident on his features “How am I supposed to be Heda if I fail at simple guard duty?!”

Aden’s voice had risen in volume and Ontari felt highly uncomfortable in her position, she was completely unprepared to give the boy any comforting words.

“I heard the guards speak about the bandits” Aden continued, seemingly oblivious to Ontari’s discomfort with the complete situation “There were fifteen of them. We would have been killed without any notice if you had not woken up”.

Ontari inclined her head in agreement, she had already come to the same conclusion. “It does not help to dwell on it though. We are alive” she said cautiously, searching through her mind frantically for something she could tell Aden. She might have gotten better at reassuring Marie, but Aden was simply not her.

Aden nodded and sighed deeply, before he visibly straightened himself. He seemed to just now realize what exactly he had told to Ontari and a slight blush dusted over his cheeks, as he hastily tried to stand and leave the tent.

Ontari watched the younger boy with a frown and a slight shake of her head. To at least a little extent, she could understand his train of thought. She had not managed to do what the queen had asked of her as well. Looking back now, she was glad that she had failed.

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

Chapter 20: Chapter 191 - 200

Chapter Text

Chapter 191

When Marie woke up on the following morning, she needed only the fraction of a second to recognize where she was. The sun had just begun to ascend and most of the room was still cast in shadows although a few candles had remained burning through the whole night. She had gotten used to wake up all tense and feeling a sickening dread creeping up in her mind, but Marie felt at peace at this very moment.

It seemed that the other women were all asleep still, so Marie had a few moments to observe Anya and Lexa while they slept.

Anya was lying on her right side and one of the woman’s hands rested reassuringly on Marie’s flank, as if the woman wanted her to know, that she was there.

Marie’s head rested comfortably on Lexa’s shoulder and she could feel the slight movement of Lexa’s calm breathing. The commander’s brown locks were fanned out around her head and her features were completely relaxed in sleep.

Marie spotted one of Clarke’s pale arms slung over Lexa’s midriff and both women had turned their faces to each other, as if they might have fallen asleep gazing into each other’s eyes.

She remembered now, how Clarke had started to spend more and more time within the commander’s quarters directly before she had left to hunt with Anya.

Marie could not truly understand why the sight of Clarke so close to Lexa now was upsetting to her, she had not found anything off with the idea of the commander and Clarke getting together before, but for some reason she did so now.

Internally Marie wondered how someone could choose to spend a night with someone else in the way the queen had forced her to. She knew that Abby had tried to reason with her that there was a difference between consenting and being raped. But would it feel different if you consented? Marie had no idea about the answer to her musing. She remembered that Lexa had hinted to the fact that Anya had spent a night with Zora like this and both women had not seemed hurt in any way afterwards. Could it be that Clarke was hurting Lexa? But why would Lexa allow that?

Unconsciously, Marie shifted closer to Lexa, breathing in her calming scent. She did not realize immediately, that her movements had woken the commander.

Lexa felt Marie squirming in place slightly and she already anticipated that their charge was being caught in yet another nightmare or that one was at least building up within her mind. So, she was surprised to notice the girl’s grey eyes peering up at her.

A soft smile tugged at the corners of her lips, when she noticed how content Marie appeared to be. She would have expected the girl to be tense and upset, after the ordeal of the last day, but the girl looked relaxed and awake.

The arm on which Marie was lying was tingling uncomfortably, as the circulation had been cut off for some time now in the limp, but Lexa did not ask the child to move either. The older nightbloods had not returned the last day, so she did not have any training scheduled in the morning and could afford to lounge in the bed for a little bit longer.

“Good morning” Lexa greeted their charge in a low tone, trying not to wake either Anya nor Clarke. She knew that waking Clarke would take more than a few hushed words, but the general would wake more easily.

“Morning” Marie breathed back just as softly and shifted even closer to Lexa.

Marie turned slightly more onto her side, so that she could place her head directly on Lexa’s chest enabling her to listen to her steady heartbeat.

Anya’s limp hand slid from Marie’s flank when the girl moved just out of reach and it startled the general awake instantly. Anya immediately was on full alert and reached over to Marie, intent on calming the girl.

Her movements stalled, when she spotted the girl peacefully cuddled to Lexa and obviously awake as well.

Marie glanced over her shoulder at Anya, when the general stretched under the furs. A bright smile danced over Marie’s features and the girl’s eyes were bright, free of the shadows which haunted them. “Good morning, Anya” the girl chirped happily at the general.

Anya barely contained an eye roll at their charge’s antics, keeping up with the girl’s mood swings was proving to be difficult.

“Can we go and train?” Marie suggested only a moment later and looked expectantly between Lexa and Anya, waiting for one of them to respond.

“You should not aggravate your wounds so quickly” Lexa curbed the girl’s enthusiasm as gently as possible.

“I feel fine” Marie immediately insisted vehemently, while she sat up and crossed her arms over her chest. She barely felt anything more than a tugging and itching on the wounds, she had caused herself the last day. It did not feel that different from the fresh kill marks; the queen had carved so many onto her skin at times that the pain had been similar.

“She is far too energetic already” Anya grumbled as she slid from the furs and left into the direction of the bathroom without another word.

Marie watched the woman leave with a frown on her face, which turned to a full-blown pout as she turned over to Lexa.

“What are we going to do today?” Marie asked after another moment, seemingly forgetting to sulk.

Amusement flashed through Lexa’s green eyes “There is another meeting scheduled after lunch. What would you prefer to do before that?”

Marie opened her mouth to answer something, but it snapped shut a second later, when Clarke sighed in her sleep and burrowed closer to Lexa from the other side. Her grey eyes seemed to narrow down on Clarke’s hand resting on Lexa’s stomach possessively.

Lexa frowned at the girl’s sudden change of mood and motioned her mutely to stand up. She knew from experience that Clarke would not wake up if she simply left the bed, so she silently guided Marie out onto the balcony. It did not fail the commander’s notice how Marie’s almost angry gaze had remained fixed on Clarke’s sleeping form.

Clarke’s words from the previous evening still rang loudly in Lexa’s mind and she knew that she needed to instil into their charge that the blonde healer was no threat to her.

She was still searching for the right words, unsure on how to proceed, when Marie beat her to it. The girl’s voice was tinted with anger and desperation “She is not allowed to hurt you!” the child almost shouted.

Lexa blinked down at the girl for a moment, her brows furrowed in confusion at Marie’s outburst. “Marie, I do not know, why you think that Clarke is hurting me” she addressed the girl in a calm tone and intent eyes “But, I can assure you that Clarke does not cause me any harm”.

Marie frowned visibly at the commander’s words and Lexa waited patiently for their charge to formulate the disagreement which burned in her grey eyes.

“But it…” Marie started in a raised voice. The girl seemed to deflate as her voice trailed off and it sounded awfully small as she added “…hurts”.

It took Lexa only the fraction of a second to understand what Marie was trying to say and she felt as if the girl’s words were tearing at her very soul. When the child’s grey eyes started to swim in a sheen of unshed tears, Lexa crouched down in front of Marie and put her hands onto her shoulders, giving them a reassuring squeeze. Her voice was honest and full of compassion for her charge when the commander tried to explain “Marie, listen to me” she said and when the girl tried to evade her gaze, Lexa forced her to look back up with a gentle, but insistent finger under the girl’s chin. “I can understand why you would assume that Clarke is hurting me, but she is not. What you have been forced to experience with Nia, does in no way compare to what it means to share your body with someone, if you desire to do so, Marie. Clarke and I love each other, she would not willingly cause me any harm”.

Marie seemed to search for something in Lexa’s green eyes for a long time, before she nodded with a doubtful expression. “I just don’t want you to…” Marie started to try to justify her reaction and trailed off immediately when Lexa’s expression turned stricter.

The commander sighed under her breath “I am aware that you wish to protect me. But that is surely not your duty”.

Marie scowled visibly at that and the disagreement was easy to identify in her expression. Lexa shook her head, silencing the girl before she could speak up “Titus taught you that as my second you are to protect the vessel of the flame, I know that, Marie. But your good intentions are misguided here”.

Lexa waited patiently for Marie to mull over her words and the emotions were flashing over the girl’s features way too quickly to be able to pinpoint them exactly.

“Can you show me…?” Marie finally asked, eyes shining with desperation, in a low and quivering tone.

“Show you what?” Lexa retorted with honest confusion. She had absolutely no idea what Marie wanted proof of now.

“How different it could be…” Marie explained and although her grey eyes showed that she was certain of what she was asking for, Lexa still noticed how the girl seemed to inch away from her instinctively.

Lexa gaped at the child for a moment, utterly speechless, before bewilderment settled in her mind and she vehemently shook her head in a silent decline.

Marie must have interpreted her denial as a kind of personal rejection and the girl’s face fell completely, backing away from Lexa until her back collided with the railing of the balcony behind her.

Lexa sighed at the girl’s crestfallen expression, it had not been her intention to hurt Marie. Internally Lexa wondered how Marie could have gotten such an absurd idea in the first place. She stepped closer to Marie, but left a slight distance between them, fearing that crowding the girl would only frighten her.

“Marie” she addressed the girl in a gentle but firm tone and waited patiently until her charge looked up again and met her eyes, before she continued. “You are going to experience one day how different it is, but you are way too young now to even contemplate such a thing. Give yourself time to heal and grow a bit first”.

Marie nodded with a reluctant expression “So, Clarke is not hurting you…?” the girl checked, changing the subject slightly and obviously still not entirely convinced. The commander’s words made sense to her somehow, but she still thought that everything might get easier if she had something to compare her experiences with.

“No, she is not” Lexa assured the child softly. After a moment she added “I know that Clarke had also kept you company when Anya and I had been away, you remember that?”

Marie nodded again, but the reluctance remained on her features. She did remember the two nights of course. It was obvious that Clarke was important to Lexa now, Marie mused internally. She felt a flash of jealousy for the blonde healer surge through her mind and she frowned. “You do not love me any less now, do you?” she breathed the question softly and her grey eyes looked uncertain.

Lexa immediately shook her head in denial and her voice did not hold even a hint to any doubt “Of course not, Marie”. The commander sighed as she placed one hand on Marie’s cheek in a gentle caress “Nothing will be able to change the depths of my feelings for you”.

Marie did not look really convinced by the commander’s reassurance, but she nodded her head nevertheless. The girl internally hoped that she would get used to being in Clarke’s proximity soon enough, she knew that the blonde healer had not actually done anything to prompt this negative reaction from her. She was still thinking about what to say, when the door to the balcony was opened again and Clarke herself stepped out.

The blonde woman had obviously searched for them and the hint of worry left her eyes when she noticed that Lexa and Marie had merely been speaking with each other and she noted on the absence of tears on the young girl’s cheeks.

Clarke stepped closer to Lexa slowly and put a hand onto the commander’s back in silent greeting. She kept her expression kind and friendly when she looked at Marie.

Marie scrutinized both of them together for long silent moments. She noticed how Lexa’s green eyes seemed slightly brighter now and the ghost of a smile played around her lips. Clarke also seemed to only wish to support the commander and no hint of malice or judgment was visible in her blue eyes. Marie took a deep breath, trying forcefully to stop the tenseness rising in her body. She did not know exactly why she was reacting this way to Clarke’s presence, but she did not wish to be even more of a bother to Lexa and Anya by being overly complicated. She knew just how hard it must be for both of her mentors to deal with all her problems now.

“Is everything fine?” Clarke asked in a kind tone and her blue eyes flitted between the commander and Marie minutely.

Marie inclined her head in silent agreement, while Lexa turned around to face her love and gently kissed her on the lips. Marie watched their interaction with interest; the queen had sometimes kissed her on the lips as well, but it did not seem like the two women felt the same disgust she had felt back then.

“Breakfast will be served soon” Lexa said when she backed away from Clarke and her green eyes sought out Marie quickly, trying to assess how their charge was reacting to seeing them kiss. To her great relieve the girl did only look slightly confused but did not seem tenser than before.

Marie nodded, taking the hint that they should be returning inside now. She smiled brightly, when Alira entered a moment later and Risha slipped into the commander’s quarters on the handmaid’s heels.

“Hi girl” she greeted the wolf and crouched down in front of the animal. A giggle bubbled from her mouth when Risha licked over her face in greeting.

Anya stepped out of the bathroom and watched Marie together with Risha. Disgust flashed through her brown eyes momentarily, but Marie did not seem disturbed at all.

“I need to take a look at her wounds and change the bandages” Clarke said to Lexa, while both of them watched the girl together with her wolf. Lexa nodded in agreement and told Clarke that it would probably be better to do so before they started their breakfast.

Lexa walked over to Marie and let her fingers glide over Risha’s muzzle “Clarke wants to check your wounds” she said in a neutral tone and motioned their charge to follow Clarke into the bathroom.

Reluctance flashed over Marie’s features shortly, but she inclined her head silently and backed away from Risha and followed the commander’s orders without any discussion.

Marie stood in the middle of the bathroom indecisively for a moment, before she simply took off her shirt. She knew that she had to strip for Clarke to be able to take off the bandages after all. But she still kept her arms crossed over her chest self-consciously. Without her clothes as at least a little barrier, she felt utterly exposed and defenceless.

Clarke watched the girl’s mannerism change in the blink off an eye with a frown and a sigh on her lips. She had not expected the younger girl to react too positive to her this morning, but she hoped that it would improve with time. It would probably be hard for her to truly gain the child’s trust. “Can you uncross your arms for me?” she asked Marie in a kind tone while she still kept a slight distance to the younger girl.

Marie shook her head in the negative. She wanted to ask Clarke something first and she was not ready to let go just yet.

Clarke’s frown deepened at the girl’s response and she watched her brows crease in concentration and she thought to spot hesitancy in her grey eyes. “You can say whatever you want” she offered and when the girl remained silent for another moment she added “Would you feel better with Anya or Lexa here in addition?”

Marie still shook her head in the negative and she took a deep breath, trying to gather her bearings quickly. “You are not going to hurt Lexa, are you?” she blurted out and her arms only tightened around herself slightly.

Clarke’s blue eyes softened noticeably and she shook her head in the negative “Of course not, Marie. I love Lexa, as much as you do” she promised the younger girl honestly.

Marie seemed to search for something in her blue eyes for long moments before she nodded and finally uncrossed her arms over her chest slowly.

With a soft smile Clarke crouched down in front of Marie and she kept her movement relatively slow as to not startle the younger girl with her touch. She had feared that the bandages would already be sticking to the girl’s skin, but it seemed that they were lucky and there had not been too much seepage, so she was able to remove them without causing Marie too much additional discomfort.

Clarke assessed the wounds carefully and was relieved to see that there were no signs of any infections setting into them. Most of the child’s wounds which were scattered over her body were superficial and not more than scratches and they would heal quickly. The places where Marie had cut away skin over her collarbone were larger but fortunately did not appear to be inflamed either. She would still put a bandage over them for a few days to keep them clean.

Clarke applied some poultice to the larger wounds with gentle and careful fingers.

Marie kept still and motionless while Clarke tended to her wounds. The blonde healer’s care felt much different from the rare time the queen had allowed her to see a healer. The healers there had not been gentle or careful at all. She was still relieved when Clarke told her that she could get dressed again and she quickly slipped the shirt back on, feeling safer once the clothing hid her body again.

While Clarke inspected the cut on her palm, Marie strained her ears to listen for what was causing the sudden commotion in the commander’s quarters. Someone had entered urgently and a message was delivered in obvious hurry. The messenger’s voice was unfortunately too low to understand what was being said, but Marie saw her own twinge of worry being reflected in Clarke’s blue eyes and she could barely wait to exit the bathroom and see for herself what was going on. Her mind shortly flashed to the nightblood children being away from Polis and Marie instantly hoped that nothing had happened to Ontari. Another fear flashed through her mind with irrational strength, could the queen have gotten into Polis?

 

 

Chapter 192

Marie stayed near the door to the bathroom after Clarke had finally told her that she was allowed to join the commander and Anya for breakfast. Her grey eyes flitted over all the people gathered in the commander’s quarters.

Alira was still in the process of serving breakfast and the handmaid stayed back as well, waiting for her time to do the commander’s hair.

She did not recognize the four strangers facing Lexa. Although Lexa was not yet dressed in her commander regalia her whole posture still screamed power and her green eyes were unyielding as she listened to the report.

One of the strangers had to be a flamekeeper. The man wore a robe similar to the one, Marie and the nightblood children had destroyed with their little prank. The man’s head was not shaved and he seemed younger than Titus. A few tattoos had been etched into the tanned skin of his face and Marie recognized a few of the symbols from the first commander’s journals.

The other three seemed to at least come from the same clan. Their clothing was similar and they were dressed in pieces of light armour. Marie thought that their colour could show them to be part of the Plain Ryder clan.

Two of them were females and Marie judged them to be similar in age to Anya. Their male companion seemed slightly younger, but it was hard for her to judge.

With large pieces of the report missing, Marie frowned when she now listened to the rest.

Apparently, the caravan of the Plain Ryder clan which had been supposed to bring war horses and quiet a lot of equipment to help their combined army, had been robbed on the way.

Lexa felt irritation rising in her mind, not really delighted that such a matter had been brought into her private quarters. It was obvious that the young flamekeeper was well aware that he had failed in his duty of keeping this under control until the official meetings started. The young man looked highly uncomfortable and a light sheen of sweat had gathered on his brow.

Anya had listened to the report with her brows knitted together. As it seemed the caravan had been unable to identify who had actually robbed them. It was highly dangerous to just go around and randomly accuse other clans of stealing and it could lead to only more unrest among the clans of the coalition, which was something they could not afford on the brink of a war. The geographical position of the land of the Plain Ryder clan made it unlikely that Ice Nation had been the culprits.

Lexa was having similar thoughts and her irritation only grew when the three representatives of the caravan seemed intent to see this matter settled immediately. Internally, she was grateful that all of them had at least already been out of bed. With Clarke and Marie in the bathroom when the small group barged into the commander’s quarters and Anya and her already sitting at a table, it could have been interpreted as another early meeting easily enough.

Marie hoped that not many people had been killed. She was aware of just how many of the coalition’s warriors would fall before they reached the Ice queen and removed her from her throne. She was still doubting slightly that such a thing was even possible without extinguishing Azgeda completely. She had no idea what exactly the clan had been supposed to bring to Polis beside the horses, so she also had no idea on how vast the losses could be. A small part of her mind wondered if the commander would still be able to chose a horse among the remaining ones for her.

“I understand your wish for revenge, Calana” Lexa addressed one of the female warriors in a strong tone. She had already dealt with her on a few occasions and knew her to be rather hot-headed. “You say that there was no possibility to determine the identity of those who attacked you” she continued and waited for the woman to nod in agreement for a moment “Than there is no sense in accusing the Lake People or Ice Nation. The ambassadors will hear about this in todays meeting”. The dismissal was clear in her tone and the clench of Calana’s jaw indicated that she had understood it as such.

The Lake People and the Plain Ryders had been at war for a long time and just like Ice Nation and Trikru were deeply hostile towards each other, both clans had never truly forgotten their animosity and were quick to throw accusations, even if they were not always warranted.

The young flamekeeper was quick to finally usher the three warriors out of the commander’s quarters and he tried to apologize his failure in rushed words. Lexa waved him off with a glare and the man left them with hurried steps.

“Sit down” Anya addressed Marie in a slightly sharper tone. The child had remained standing in front of the door to the bathroom and had appeared deep in thought.

Marie quickly stepped over to the couch and sat down cautiously beside Anya, glancing at the general with unsure eyes.

Anya barely contained the eye roll in reaction; it was hard to keep track of the girl’s moods and reactions now and she hoped that it would get easier with time. It had only been a few days since Marie had regained all of her memories and the girl was just starting to really work through her trauma now.

Marie took the tea to settle her stomach without any kind of protest. She only sniffed at the brew with the hint of a grimace flashing over her features and she was positively surprised by the sweet taste. Lexa had obviously done the tea herself as the commander usually added the biggest amount of honey for Marie’s sake.

Now that Anya did not seem particularly angry, Marie slowly inched closer to the woman until their legs were slightly touching on the couch.

Lexa watched their charge’s mannerism with the hint of a smile playing around the corners of her lips, distracting her from the robbed caravan for a moment. It was painfully obvious that Marie was still unsure about herself, her self-esteem would have probably dwindled down a lot after what she had suffered through. The girl seemed to seek their approval almost constantly and physical contact seemed to calm her down again. Lexa hoped that their charge would get less skittish over time again. The girl’s grey eyes still showed a lingering fear at their fore front and she seemed to search for possible dangers around herself repeatedly.

“How big of a loss is this?” Clarke finally asked while sitting down beside Lexa. She had cleaned up in the bathroom after Marie had left quickly, so she had only caught the very end of the discussion.

“We shall see” Lexa answered vaguely. She would need to hear the exact extent of what had been lost before she could give a clear answer. Calana had mostly stressed that fifteen warriors had fallen as they protected the caravan, it had not been clear if any equipment had been lost at all.

“Anya, you are free to inspect the caravan?” Lexa checked, although she had no knowledge of any of the general’s plans.

Anya nodded and shortly glanced at Marie “She can accompany me”. Both of them had agreed that letting Marie sit in endless meetings with the ambassadors was not the best choice of action while the girl seemed so unstable in her reactions.

Lexa inclined her head slightly. She tried to keep as still as possible while Alira braided her brown locks into her usual hairstyle. The handmaid mutely switched over to Marie after she had finished the commander’s hair. It was not important for Marie to learn to do her own hair in this intricate fashion at the moment and the girl could always wear an easier style if there was no one available to do her hair for her.

Marie smiled slightly in silent greeting to Alira and her smile brightened considerable when the handmaid pulled a hidden honey cake from one of her backs and handed the pastry over to her.

Anya slightly rolled her eyes. She was still convinced that letting indulge the girl in such a fashion was spoiling their charge needlessly. She had tried to reason with Lexa that Marie should get used to a simpler life style with less luxury, but the commander had not been impressed with her argumentation and had quickly waved her off. She still planned to take Marie and Ontari in addition to a longer outing, probably lasting a few weeks, where they would be responsible for much more than they were now in the tower. She was grateful that she had had the possibility to hold a vast part of Lexa’s education outside of Polis and Anya was convinced both of her charges would benefit from such a separation as well.

“Are we going to see the horses as well?” Marie asked, voice tinted with enthusiasm, in between a few bites of the honey cake.

Anya nodded with a slight smirk, before her brown eyes turned to Lexa. She was aware of the commander’s promise that Marie would be getting one of the horses for her personal use and she highly doubted that Lexa would let the girl down.

A frown flashed over Marie’s features before she looked over to Lexa and confusion appeared in her grey eyes.

Lexa lightly glared at the general, but her expression was kind as she addressed Marie “I will take a look at the horses as soon as possible to see if one is suitable for you” she assured their charge.

Marie’s frown only deepened and she even seemed slightly offended “I have not asked because of that…” her voice trailed off accusingly.

Lexa and Anya both narrowed their eyes at their charge, but both chose to not react to Marie’s interpretation and simply continued with their breakfast in silence.

Clarke watched their interactions with a slight smile and she had to bite the inside of her cheek at the girl’s offended scowl to keep herself from laughing out loud, which would not really help their still somewhat tense relationship.

“Laurel has asked for you to take her rounds today” Alira addressed Clarke, completely ignoring what was spoken at the table. She had finished quickly with Marie’s hair and had nothing more to do in the commander’s quarters.

Clarke nodded in acknowledgment and quickly finished with her piece of bread. A slight twinge of worry washed through her mind. She had come to like the lead healer of the tower and the woman was already fairly aged for a habitant of the earth and she had not noticed the woman ever missing one of her rounds before. “Is she feeling unwell?” Clarke asked the handmaid in a kind tone.

Alira shook her head “Not that I know of” she answered and waited for Lexa to officially dismiss her from the room.

Marie watched the handmaid leave with a slight frown “Where is Risha?” she asked in obvious confusion. She had gotten used to the fact that the wolf got fed in the kitchen of the tower before breakfast and usually returned when breakfast was served and she had just now noticed the animal’s absence.

“Probably outside of the tower” Lexa answered easily. While the wolf had mostly kept her company during the days in the last months, the wolf had also vanished for quiet some hours at times. Guards had told her that Risha was roaming the streets and even occasionally left the confines of the capitol. The people of Polis all knew the wolf and none of them would harm Risha. The wolf was also old enough now to protect itself if needed.

Marie nodded mutely, although her expression clearly showed how lacking she had found the answer.

“Risha is no dog, Marie” Anya acknowledged the girl’s train of thought “She has a mind of her own and is able to defend herself, wolves need the possibility to hunt and move around as they please”.

Marie begrudgingly nodded again. She was slightly surprised that Anya had picked up on her thoughts like that, without her actually ever having said anything yet.

“Come” Anya finally addressed the girl a few moments later. She knew that Lexa would need to open the meeting with the ambassadors as soon as possible and Marie had stopped actually eating anything some time ago. She tried to keep track of how much their charge ate during their shared meals. That the girl had managed to take a sleeping aid without her noticing at all was still gnawing at her and Anya was intent to keep better track of the girl from now on. The tea they had Marie drink before the meals, seemed to help their charge greatly and she had not seen her vomit after eating any longer. They would still need to see how her body reacted when she stopped taking the tea.

Marie quickly stood up and smiled slightly at Lexa before falling into step behind Anya. The general held the girl’s dark green coat for her and waited for her to slip her arms into the sleeves. Although it was still summer, the temperatures were dropping already, which also showed that their time to move into the north was getting shorter every day now.

Marie frowned slightly at the coat “Is it so cold outside already?”. She had not paid any close attention to the weather in the last weeks. During her time with the Ice queen there had always been snow and after returning to Polis the weather had just not been important to her at all.

“The summer is ending already” Anya answered curtly. A hint of impatience flashed over her features and it was enough for Marie to quicken her steps and stop asking questions.

Marie’s frown deepened. She remembered now that Lexa had promised to show her the sea, where Luna’s clan lived. She guessed that such a journey would make the most sense in summer and she disappointed that they would not be travelling there. Marie knew that the war with Azgeda was much more important and that her disappointment was childish, so she tried to quell it quickly.

The way through the tower passed mostly in silence and Anya watched Marie from the corner of her eyes. The girl’s whole frame had visibly tensed once they left the tower and the girl’s features had gotten almost blank as well. She sighed under her breath, the girl would need to learn to feel more comfortable outside of the tower as soon as possible.

Marie quickly found that inspecting the caravan was not as interesting as she had hoped.

The caravan mostly consisted of a few wagons, which had been filled to the brim with pelts, thick leather to built tents, weapons and supplies. Apparently, almost half of the wagons had been lost in the attack. They had been burnt by flaming arrows and everything had been destroyed by the flames before the warriors had been able to fend off the attack. Only ten warriors had survived the attack and a few of the horses had either been killed or managed to flee.

A flitting smile washed over her features when she noticed a group of horses who had been horded into a temporary paddock. The horses were playfully tossing their heads around at each other, as if they were teasing each other. Another smaller group of horses was kept separated from the larger group and Marie felt her smile drop completely. All of them were visibly injured, some only had a few slightly bleeding wounds, nothing more than shallow grazes, while others were obviously severely injured.

Marie kept as close to Anya as possible as the general closely listened to the report of one of the leaders of the caravan. She did not feel particularly well outside of the tower. Marie did not yet understand herself why she felt secure to at least a comfortable degree in Lexa’s quarters and the tower and so skittish as soon as she stepped foot outside of its protecting walls. She noticed how a few of the members of the caravan were eying her almost suspiciously and Marie could not fathom why. She had never met this people before, so they should not have any reason for their behaviour. The almost hostile atmosphere did not ease Marie’s skittishness in the slightest and she felt the general’s worried gaze returning to her every few moments. Marie tried to forcefully keep her expression as blank as possible and tried to stand tall and still next to Anya.

Her attention was called from listening loosely to the general’s conversation by a slight uproar in the caravan. The horses in the larger paddock seemed restless all of a sudden and they trampled in place, blowing up a cloud of dust with their heavy hooves.

Marie’s grey eyes were worried and slightly spooked as she looked up at Anya in silent question as to what might be causing the horses to act out at this moment.

Anya looked down at Marie for a moment with a slight frown before her gaze turned to the paddock as well.

Three warriors had run to the paddock in a frenzy. It took the general a moment to spot what was happening. One of the severely wounded horses had managed to break through the weak fence and joined the larger group of animals. Anya felt a small surge of disappointment; the wounded horse was obviously mutated. Mutated mounts were believed to be the strongest and most loyal horses to be found, it was hard to gain their loyalty and they only bound themselves to one rider during their life. One of the horse’s legs was injured and the animal seemed to have great difficulties to move.

“We will have to kill it” Orlin, the warrior who had been reporting to Anya, said, trying to regain the general’s attention in a calm tone.  Frustration was clear in the man’s tone as well, he was well aware how precious the horse had been before it was wounded.

Marie’s grey eyes snapped to the warrior, horror etched into her features. The horse was magnificent and killing such a precious animal would be a horrendous crime in her mind. She looked up at Anya, opening her mouth to ask the general on how to safe the animal, but she closed it again without saying a word.

Anya watched the girl’s antics from the corner of her eyes. It was characteristic of the child to want to safe a hopeless animal, taking in Risha was enough proof of that. It would truly be a shame to kill the horse, if it could be saved. “Are its’ injuries fatal?” the general asked in a nonchalant tone.

Orin’s brows knitted together and his expression was cautious as he shook his head. “Not fatal. But a horse with a wounded leg cannot function as a war horse” he reasoned in an even tone, with a hint of confusion.

Marie’s grey eyes seemed almost angry as she looked up at the warrior and Anya could see the gears turning in the girl’s head, before the girl could impulsively say something, she interjected with finality “Have it moved to the commander’s stables, the stables master can take a look at it”. Marie’s slight smile was acknowledgment enough to Anya for her quick decision, she knew that Lexa would not have any objection anyway.

 

 

Chapter 193

“What was it that you had wanted to say to the warrior?” Anya addressed Marie in a low tone. They had left the caravan behind and were on their way back towards the tower. It was midday now and the streets were filled with people dealing with their daily duties.

Marie felt almost too crowded and she had moved a little closer to Anya when a young warrior had bumped into her shoulder only a moment ago. She glanced up at the general with a slightly raised brow. She had been convinced that she had been successful in keeping her expression blank, but apparently Anya had seen right through her.

“It is not important” Marie tried to brush her mentor off, looking away and letting her gaze trail around the people on the market.

Anya’s lips thinned visibly and there was the hint of a growl in her tone when she reprimanded the girl “I asked you a question, Marie”.

Marie ducked her head, a slight blush colouring her cheeks. “You already saved the horse” she tried to reason, but she still did not meet Anya’s eyes.

Anya kept on taxing her charge with a warning glare, she did not care one bit for the girl’s reasoning and she sensed that there was much more to it than she had said. She was not convinced that the child had kept her tongue because Nia had truly instilled it into her, the girl’s expression had fallen completely at Orin’s words. But she knew the girl well enough to wait until her charge was ready to voice which was bugging her at the moment.

Following a sudden feeling, Anya steered the girl in the direction of the stables. Lexa was surely still occupied with the meeting with the ambassadors. She was also slightly curious to see if the stables master thought the wounded horse treatable or not.

Marie looked confused for a moment at the obvious change of direction. Her slight smile returned when she realized that they were nearing the stables though.

Anya watched her charge’s face light up when they entered the stables. Both of the commander’s horses and her own horse immediately neighed in greeting at the child and Marie stepped away from her for the first time since leaving the tower. While Marie greeted the horses respectively, Anya walked through the stables in search of the stables master.

The general found the man in one of the boxes at the very end of the stables. The wounded horse had been herded into the small space. Five different warriors were trying to tend to its injuries, but they did not seem very efficient, the frightened horse was fighting them as much as possible.

The stables master backed off from the horse and called his men back as well, maybe giving the horse some time to calm down would make it easier later.

“General” he greeted Anya with a respectful nod, wiping the sweat from his brow.

“We shall try again later to treat it” the man said a moment later “The leg seems to be broken”.

Anya nodded with a grim expression. If the stables master’s assessment was correct, the horse would be dead. A broken leg would lead to an impaired leg.

Marie had followed Anya after a moment and she gasped under her breath at Anya’s next words “Put it down immediately if the leg is indeed broken”.

“Take a look at the other horses which had been delivered by the Plain Riders” Anya ordered and she was slightly surprised to hear that the stables master had already inspected the unharmed horses.

Unnoticed by Anya, Marie etched closer to the small box and peered through the fence to the horse. The horse’s dark eyes immediately connected with hers. Marie saw the encompassing panic swimming in them and she felt compassion for the animal. Lexa had explained to her that most of the Plain Riders horses were untamed mounts, unused to the presence of humans.

Marie just now noticed how unusual the horse looked. It did not only have one pair of ears, but a second pair was positioned a little more towards its flank. A third eye rested between the other eyes, but it was not dark but a light blue in colour.

Marie cautiously extended a hand towards the horse’s enormous head and she watched how its’ ears flicked around in agitation. It trampled around with its front legs, clearly hindered by the swollen leg. Marie was in the process of retracting her hand again, when the horse suddenly quitted down and only sniffed at her fingers.

The horse neighed at her, but while the commander’s horses’ neighing usually sounded friendly and content, this horse sounded almost desperate.

Marie felt a sheen of tears gather in her eyes and her voice shook noticeably as she tried to reassure the horse “It will be alright” she promised lowly “They only want to help you”. She had moved closer to the fence and could now let the tips of her fingers glide over the horse’s velvet nose.

“Continue to do that” a voice from behind suddenly startled Marie, pulling her from her thoughts.

Marie craned her neck slightly to look back and spotted Anya standing directly behind herself. The stables master had stepped closer to the gate as well and slowly opened it.

Marie continued to caress the horse’s nose and efficiently kept its’ attention on herself, while the stables master inspected the leg. It was obvious that the horse was still less than pleased to be touched by the man, but it begrudgingly accepted the treatment.

“It is broken” the man’s voice was grave and his eyes looked almost apologetic.

Marie’s eyes turned horrified and her voice openly pleading “Don’t kill it, please…”

“Marie, a war horse with such an impairment cannot…” Anya tried to reason with her charge. But Marie shook her head, tears falling down her cheeks, as she backed away from the horse and suddenly turned on her heels, storming out of the stables before Anya could physically stop her.

Although Marie could clearly hear Anya calling out behind her, she did not stop in her haste. Her mind was filled with the need to get out of the situation. She could not shake the look of the horse’s dark eyes from her mind. It had looked so lost, frightened and helpless and Marie was sure that it would have pleaded for its’ life, if it had the ability to talk.

Anya only curtly told the stables master to put the horse on hold and rushed behind her retreating second, coursing the child in her mind. This was not the first instance where the girl had opted to run away from a confrontation. But this was not how you solved something and she would make sure that Marie would understand this in the future.

Anya felt her heart rate increase with a surge of fright when she lost sight of Marie. The streets were still crowded with people of the different clans and the girl had obviously already slipped away undetected. She direly hoped that Marie would not hurt herself again. Anger pulsed through her veins, anger directed at herself. She had promised to herself to protect Marie as best as possible, but loosing the girl only a few hours after she had broken down did not seem like a good start with that. Lexa would surely be less than pleased with her and rightfully so.

Anya hurried her steps and she was well enough known that people immediately made place for her in her path. Her mind was whirling with the question as to where Marie might have run to. Ontari still had not returned, so her charge could not go to her. Lexa was probably still in a meeting, but it was questionable if Marie would think of that before she rushed to the commander. Anya quickened her steps even more and she ignored the confused glances of the guards standing post at the base of the tower.

“She is in the elevator” a male guard at the entrance of the elevator told Anya immediately.

The general lightly frowned, wondering how the man would know that she was searching for Marie. With a slight shake of her head, she silenced her own thoughts. The girl would have probably been visibly upset and she could not have been that much ahead of her.

“Is she riding the elevator alone?” the general asked in an impatient tone.

The man nodded and added “She signalled for the top floor”.

Anya nodded in silent acknowledgment and turned on her heel, opting to take the stairs instead of waiting for the elevator to come down again. Marie was probably heading to the commander’s quarters, but Anya did not know how long the girl would stay when she found the room empty. She hurried along the steps and her breathing had quickened and her legs were burning noticeably from the exhaustion of climbing so many steps in a short time, when Anya finally reached the top floor of the tower.

Loras was stationed in front of the commander’s quarters and the young man immediately motioned towards the entrance of the room. “She just went in” he said when the general reached him “I was not sure…”

Anya waved him off with a dismissive gesture, but she remained rooted to the spot for a few moments, trying to gather her breath and to calm down. She still felt angry at her charge for running off again. She had called behind the girl loud and clear, but Marie had totally ignored her shouts. She could understand to a certain degree that the child had been upset, but she also knew how lethal it could be if the girl was going to ignore orders on the battle field.

Once she had calmed down considerably, Anya inclined her head towards Loras who immediately opened the doors to the commander’s quarters for her. She direly hoped that Marie had not done something drastic in the few moments she had been alone.

What Anya found was Marie sitting in the middle of the commander’s bed, clutching a pillow to her chest and crying bitter tears.

Anya felt her resolve crumble and her anger ebb away instantly at the almost pathetic sight her charge made. She knew how unbelievable compassionate the child’s nature could be, but something told her that there was more causing her this immense kind of grieve than just the thought of a horse which was to be killed.

“Marie…” Anya addressed the upset girl in what she hoped to be a soothing tone.

Marie startled strongly at the unexpected voice, she had not heard anyone enter. She knew that she should always be aware of her surroundings and keep up her guard. But she could not shake the words from her mind that Anya and the stables master had exchanged. She tried to get control back over her crying, but she seemed powerless to stop the never-ending flow of tears.

Anya sighed under her breath as she slowly neared the bed and sat down on the edge, extending a hand and putting it on the girl’s shaking shoulder. She was positively surprised that the child did not make any attempt to shake it off. She squeezed the girl’s shoulder softly and brushed a few tears from her wet cheek.  “Marie, you have to understand that a maimed horse cannot…” she tried to appeal to the girl’s rationality.

Marie’s reaction startled the general strongly. The girl’s grey eyes had lost all of their sadness and were burning with an intense rage, she had slid a little distance away and her whole frame was shaking with her erratic breath. “So you are going to kill me too?!” she screamed angrily.

Anya was taken aback slightly by the girl’s sudden mood swing and her features reflected her bewilderment. What had gotten into the child now? She shook her head in the negative and her tone was not as steady as she would have liked “How have you gotten this insane idea now?”

Marie snorted and her lips thinned, a bitter expression overtook her expression “You are going to have the wounded horse killed…”

Anya’s brows knitted together in confusion. She waited for her charge to offer something more as she did not understand the girl’s logic at the moment.

“I am spoiled goods as well…” Marie screeched, anger and resignation now seemed to battle in her grey eyes.

Anya felt the girl’s words like a physical slap and she felt her breath being knocked out of her chest. A sheen of tears mystified her own gaze and Anya ignored Marie’s obvious anger, sliding closer to the girl and pulling her into a tight hug.

Marie fought against her hold for a few moments, before the girl fisted her fists into Anya’s shirt and leaned closer against the woman. She kept on mumbling “I am damaged…”

Anya tightened her arms around the girl’s body, as she felt a tear slide down her own cheek unbidden. She felt the child’s tears dampening a patch on her shirt, as she let a hand glide through the girl hair and drew calming circles on her back. When it seemed as if the girl’s hysterical crying was slowly dying down, Anya backed away slightly so that she could look into Marie’s grey eyes.

“Marie, listen closely to me” she addressed the girl in a compassionate tone “You are not damaged. You are not any kind of spoiled goods in any form”.

Marie lightly snorted under her breath, which sounded almost like a watery smirk. She shook her head in denial “I am” she claimed “I cannot stand darkness any longer, I cannot eat without feeling sick, I cannot leave the tower without feeling afraid, I cannot think of…the queen…” Marie was shaking strongly as her voice gave out.

Anya’s lips thinned slightly at the girl’s stubbornness. “You have suffered through months of torture and you survived, Marie, you are stronger than you think and you will feel better again” she tried to reassure her charge in a vehement tone. The general could fathom why the girl was feeling this way, but she needed to learn to let go of her fears now. No one expected Marie to heal overnight, all of them were aware of just how long it might take Marie to truly heal.

Anya could see in Marie’s grey eyes that her words did have some effect on the child, but it was also apparent that she had not yet run out of arguments either.

Marie eased out of the embrace completely and stood from the bed, her voice had turned distant as she said “I am your and the commander’s second. I am a weakness like this…” She remembered how the people from the caravan had looked at her. She had heard some whispering to each other about the commander’s second who had returned mysteriously after months with the Ice queen.

Anya stood from the bed as well and stopped Marie in her tracks as the girl had begun to pace the length of the room. If it were possible, she would have liked nothing better than to take the girl and physically knock back some sense into her, but Anya knew that it would be no use. “You know very well that you are much more to me and Lexa than a mere second” the general exclaimed, trying to keep the dismay from her tone and not succeeding completely. “We have already told you that you are stuck with us now” she added.

Marie breathed out a light laugh and shook her head with a strange grimace mixed with sadness and humour. “We are not officially family…” she said lowly, almost too low for Anya to be able to catch the words.

Anya frowned at her charge’s words and she shook her head with a sigh. Internally she noted to speak with Lexa about he girl’s obvious worry. They had been sure that keeping the girl as their second would be enough, but it might not be sufficient anymore now.

Marie grimaced when it finally registered in her mind that she had caused another scene and had been on the verge of another break down, she sighed, feeling more disappointed with herself than anything else. “I do not feel strong…” Marie whispered as she sank down on the edge of the bed.

Anya’s features lost their strictness and became utterly soft while she crouched down in front of Marie. “You need to have patience with yourself, Marie” the general said to her charge and her brown eyes were urging Marie to understand “You are not weak and you will recognize that sooner or later” she promised.

Marie’s expression did not look as if the girl had truly been convinced by her mentor’s words, but she nevertheless nodded in silent acceptance. She let her head fall forwards slightly and rested her forehead against Anya’s shoulder, breathing in her scent deeply. “Does the horse really have to be killed?” Marie asked, a definite whine present in her tone.

Anya sighed under her breath and she felt her resolve crumble confronted with the child’s persistence and the deep longing in her grey eyes as she peered up through her lashes. “The stables master will take a look at it later again” she tried to amend. A little steel reinfused into her tone “If he thinks that the horse cannot be saved, it will be put down.”

Marie nodded with a reluctant expression, but she knew this certain tone of voice well enough to know that trying to argue with her mentor further would lead to nothing.

“When will Lexa return?” Marie asked after a few moments of silence.

Anya frowned slightly and stood up again, her legs still felt the exhaustion of having climbed all the stairs to the top of the tower in a hurry. “When she is done with her duties for the day” she answered vaguely. Marie should know by now that the commander was a very busy person.

Marie pursed her lips, obviously not satisfied with the general’s answer. “Can you not call for her?” she asked, her grey eyes pleading with the woman mutely.

Anya shook her head in denial. She was well aware that Lexa would come up immediately if she called for her, but Marie seemed to be reasonably calm again and the girl should not get used to the fact that Lexa would abandon her duty for her if she pleased.

“We shall resume your lessons now” Anya addressed the girl after a moment, efficiently distracting her from whatever thoughts were still plaguing her mind and trying to ignore Marie’s visible disappointment at being denied like that.

Marie groaned for a moment, but she straightened up immediately when she caught Anya glaring at her antics. She knew that there was still a lot that she needed to learn, but specifics about the trade between the different clans of the coalition did not sound very thrilling.

 

Aden and Ontari finally make it back to the capitol in this at well. Let me know what you think ;)

I hope you are still enjoying what I write. I cannot seem to put a stop to it xD

 

Chapter 194

“Anya?” Marie addressed her mentor. She was supposed to be reading a text about the early history of Trikru, but the text was hard to read and she was losing the patience to read and felt boredom creep into her mind.

Anya had already noticed the girl’s slacking attention, Marie had started to fidget in her place some time ago. Although Clarke had said that Marie should rest today and recover from the strain on her body of the last days, Anya thought that having the girl exercise physically would probably help to calm her a little. It was obvious that Marie was feeling restless and found it hard to concentrate at the moment. Anya had tried to reign in her temper during their earlier lesson and not snap at the child for her tardiness.

She looked up at her charge in silent question from the report she had been reading and waited for Marie to state her mind.

“Can we go outside again?” Marie asked after another beat of silence.

Anya sighed under her breath, but she inclined her head in agreement. She doubted Marie would continue her reading for much longer anyway and forcing the child to continue would not do much good.

The girl smiled softly in obvious relieve and immediately snapped the book shut. Her mood lifted instantly and secretly Marie hoped that Lexa or Ontari would have returned later as well.

Anya led Marie outside of the tower in silence. The girl was smiling slightly and she looked around the base of the tower in what could pass as curiosity. Anya did not comment on the fact to how close Marie kept walking to her, she could feel the girl’s shoulder bumping into her side with every other step.

Although the streets were still crowded, it seemed that a few people had already returned to their homes or stopped by at a tavern. So, the crowd was thinned at least somewhat.

“Can we go to the market?” Marie asked lowly. She did not think that anyone was watching her in particular at the moment or she could at least pretend in her mind that the people were solely looking at Anya and not at her.

Anya guided the girl towards the market, she had not taken the girl there since her return and she had enjoyed looking at all the offered wares before.

It seemed that Marie still enjoyed the markets and the girl seemed to forget about all the eyes still watching them. She skidded between the stalls and was freely accepting the free samples from the stalls which offered food.

Anya watched the girl with the hint of a smile ghosting around the corners of her lips. She kept back slightly and only watched her charge, but she still kept track of their surroundings acutely.

Not too far away from them two young men suddenly started to argue loudly. Anya quickly observed that both of them had already had more alcohol for the day than was advisable. Both were dressed as warriors and she guessed that they were part of the troops already gathering in and around Polis.

“Stay here” she addressed Marie sharply and strode over to the two quarrelling men before their companions could chose to aid their friend and the little argument would develop into a small brawl.

Marie watched Anya walk away with a slight frown. As soon as the woman had left her side and she could not clearly see her anymore, she was suddenly fully aware of the people staring at her. Marie straightened herself and tried to keep her breathing steady.

“Here” a girl behind her addressed Marie in a kind tone.

Marie turned around abruptly, she had still watched the place where Anya had vanished in the crowd. She stood opposite of a girl which could not be much older than herself. It seemed as if the girl was working at the food stall and a woman stood next to her. Both of them shared the same features, so Marie guessed them to be mother and daughter. She took a closer look at what the girl was offering to her and thought it could be some kind of fruit.

Marie took the offered food before she could offend the girl by declining. Cautiously Marie bit of a little piece of the unknown fruit and she was positively surprised by the taste. The fruit was a dark red in colour and it tasted divine in her opinion.

She smiled slightly at the other girl and inclined her head in acknowledgment “It is good” she said kindly.

The girl smiled brightly at her mother and it seemed she was proud to have offered something that was to her taste.

“Mummy…” a slightly younger voice suddenly sounded from behind them and the woman turned, just as a girl came running at her.

Marie did not know why the fruit suddenly tasted like dust in her mouth and why it felt so painful to watch the woman hug her daughter lovingly. She could barely muster more than a weak smile for Anya when the general returned to her a few moments later.

“Do you not like it?” Anya asked, motioning to the piece of fruit left in her charge’s hand.

Marie blinked up at her for a moment and shook her head in denial, eating the rest of the food almost hurriedly now.

Anya followed Marie’s gaze and frowned slightly. Her charge’s mood had notably dropped but she failed to understand the reasoning. She had only seen a mother standing with her daughter, nothing to be upset about.

Before she could ask Marie, what had upset her, riders approached the market and the direct path towards the tower. Anya immediately spotted Aden and Ontari among the group and her frown deepened, wondering why both nightblood children were alone and not together with the rest of the conclave.

Marie moved in their direction without waiting for orders from Anya. Marie was internally grateful for the distraction Ontari’s and Aden’s return supplied. She frowned slightly when she noticed that one of Ontari’s arm was wound into a sling and a thick bandage rested on one of Aden’s legs.

“Are you hurt seriously?” Marie asked with worry flitting into her tone and her grey eyes switched between both of them minutely. It was obvious that both of the nightbloods had been hurt but Marie had no idea where the conclave had been at all during the last two days.

Anya had followed her young charge with quick strides and her brown eyes quickly took notice of the obvious injuries on both nightbloods as well. She recognized one of the warriors being part of the group as a healer, so she was assured that their injuries would have been accounted for already and both were able to ride on their own indicating that their injuries were not life threatening at least.

“An ambush by bandits” one of the warriors quickly relied to the general, keeping his tone as los as possible. It was not advisable for all citizens to hear that the bandits were still causing this much trouble.

Anya’s lips thinned, but she nodded silently to show that she had understood. “I will bring them back to the tower” she said, efficiently dismissing the group of guards for now. She took the reigns to both horses in her hands and pulled the mounts in the direction of the tower. The guards could return to the guard house already, which was located in another direction. She would need to speak with Lexa about taking a larger number of warriors to put an end to the band of bandits once and for all before even more of them could gather in the woods. If they had been cocky enough to attack the nightblood children who had all been guarded quiet heavily, it was not out of the scope of possibility that they could try to ambush the outer region of the capitol as well.

Marie’s frown had only deepened, she had heard Lexa and Anya discussing about the bandits before. She wondered if it were part of the same band of bandits that had ambushed her and Lexa in the woods some time ago now. Aden had only shortly answered her smile and all in all the boy seemed subdued and withdrawn.

“It is good to see you again” Ontari said, voice ringing honest and her dark eyes looked kindly to Marie.

Marie’s smile grew visibly and she was internally relieved that the older girl had returned now. She had missed her presence during her absence.

“Clarke will aspect your wound later” Anya interrupted her charges’ reunion in a slightly sharp tone, trying to remind them to mind their tongues now.

Ontari only inclined her head in silent acknowledgement. She had already expected that the general would wish for someone else to assess her wound additionally although she was still rattled slightly by the Trikru woman’s obvious care for her.

Marie had understood Anya’s subtle hint that they should not speak freely in the openness of the streets and kept silent the rest of the way back to the tower. The girl seemed rather impatient to get inside and be able to ask what had happened to them. Internally the girl wondered what might have happened to the rest of the conclave and she hoped that all of them were fine. She winced slightly when she caught herself thinking in ways she should not, she knew that she would not truly mourn for Kato if he had happened to die.

Once they reached the base of the tower Anya helped Aden down from the horse when the boy visibly hesitated to dismount.

Marie offered a hand to Ontari in silence. The nightblood was visibly startled by the kind gesture and seemed to contemplate her hand for a beat in thought before she extended the hand of her uninjured hand and leaned a little of her weight on Marie.

Marie gasped slightly when Ontari dismounted, she had severely miscalculated the impact of Ontari’s weight on her own body and she felt her knees buckle under own body, unable to hold up both of their combined weights.

Anya was not quick enough to set Aden on his feet and hurry over to Marie before both of her charges had already tumbled down next to Ontari’s horse, both of them emitting a startled yelp at the same time. The older nightblood had fallen on Marie’s smaller body and was hurriedly trying to get to her feet again.

“I am sorry” Ontari immediately apologized to Marie, shamefaced at not being able to get from the horse without help. One injured arm should not impair her in such a way and she should have been able to dismount without any kind of assistance at all. Internally, she hoped that she had not caused any kind of harm to Marie, which had surely not been her intention.

Marie winced slightly when she accepted Ontari’s uninjured hand and let herself be pulled back to her feet. She was still slightly awed by the apparent strength Ontari had and she wondered if she would ever show such amounts of physical strength effortlessly. Ontari had bumped with her shoulder against her collarbone and Marie could already feel blood trickle down her chest beneath her shirt, sticking the material to her skin. The wounds that she had caused herself must have reopened, after a thin scab had formed over them over the last night.

Marie shook her head, waving off the nightblood’s apology. It had been her own fault that both of them had fallen down and she hoped that Ontari had not worsened her own injury due to the fall.

“Into the tower with you” Anya directed all three of them impatiently. She was acutely aware of the group of people who had stopped at the base of the tower and were watching the children.

Marie and Ontari followed their mentor’s order immediately, while Aden took a moment to limp to the entrance of the tower. His leg was throbbing painfully after being in the saddle for a few hours now and he was wishing for his bed to lie down and rest more than anything. He dearly hoped that Heda would wait to speak with him until he had rested at least a little. He feared being faced with the commander’s disappointment and he knew that Lexa would be disappointed in his failure.

They went into the elevator together and dropped off Aden on the floor of the nightbloods. Anya was musing over the fact if the ambush on the conclave could have been deliberate. Targeting the nightbloods who were supposed to compete in the conclave after Lexa’s death could weaken the whole coalition. The bandits mostly consisted of those who had been outcast from their own clans and it was reasonable to assume that they would hunger after revenge on those who they thought had wronged them.

“What has happened in detail?” Anya asked once the elevator began to move to the top floor. There were enough guards on the floor of the conclave to ward off any unwanted assassins, but Anya was sure that Lexa would contemplate to increase their number again, the children needed to be protected at all costs. Without a nightblood to succeed her, the coalition would fall into utter chaos.

“Aden and I were paired off together to search for the token” Ontari began her narration. She kept out about what they had talked with each other, she doubted that the general needed to know about their conversations in detail. “Aden had been supposed to keep the first guard shift at night. But he had fallen asleep” she said but she kept the judgement from her tone.

Anya frowned slightly at this piece of information, but she was not truly surprised. The nightbloods may be well trained in combat techniques, but they were ill prepared for the daily life of a normal warrior.

“When I woke and went to relive myself, we were ambushed” Ontari continued. She told them they had been outnumbered and that both had been wounded while fighting off the bandits. How they had managed to kill them off and that they had decided together to call of the search for the token after they had found the killed guards who had been supposed to protect them from an ambush.

Anya inclined her head “You have both made the right choice to return without finishing your task. You could have encountered more bandits otherwise”.

Ontari nodded immediately. She was slightly perplexed when Anya did not stop at the door to their shared quarters but continued to the commander’s quarters. She was even more confused when the room was empty and Anya motioned her to sit down on the couch.

Marie made herself at home in the room immediately, shrugging of her coat and boots and discarding the items randomly on the floor.

Anya’s lips thinned visibly in irritation at her younger charge’s tardiness and reprimanded the girl to pick up after herself. Marie winced slightly but complied without any word, folded her coat together and place it over the back of a chair and placed her boots beneath the same chair tidily.

Marie pulled at her shit with a slight grimace, the material was starting to stick to her collarbone uncomfortably while the blood was beginning to dry.

Ontari just now noticed that one of Marie’s hands was bandaged as well and the blood slicking her shirt to her skin stood out starkly on the bright material, she wondered what might have happened to the younger girl. The placement of the blood did not seem to fit to a training wound and she knew how careful Anya was in truly hurting the child in training anyway.

Anya had watched Marie as well “Keep away from them” she reproached the girl and swatted her hands from the hem of her shirt. She sighed under her breath at the sight of fresh blood. “Take the short off” she ordered promptly. Clarke had left behind a special kind of tincture to clean out the wounds in case they opened which should ward off an infection and aid in the healing process, the healer had anticipated that the wounds would not be healing quickly or easily.

Marie took off the shirt without hesitation, but she hissed slightly when the shirt pulled at her wounds where it had begun to stick to her skin already.

Ontari’s eyes widened visibly at the sight of Marie’s body, it was littered with various wounds which looked as if they could be scratch marks. The large wounds on Marie’s collarbone seemed to have been placed with intent and it took her only a moment to realize what must have happened.

Her dark eyes looked at Anya with horror flitting through them, she would not have thought it possible that the general would agree to remove the kill marks from Marie’s body and she could not wrap her mind around the fact that it seemed like exactly that had happened during her absence.

Anya frowned when she noted the nightblood’s dark eyes hefted on herself with an accusing expression. She stared at the girl in silence for long moments, a warning in her brown eyes not to overstep her place and she was slightly surprised that it did not seem really effective at all.

Marie called her attention suddenly when she held up a piece of cloth and the tincture, mutely asking Anya to take care of the wounds instead of doing it herself.

Anya took the cloth without a beat of hesitation and poured a little of the strongly smelling substance onto it, before she carefully dabbed at the girl’s wounds with the cloth.

Marie winced visibly and backed off in an automatic reaction from her touch.

“Keep still” Anya reprimanded the girl lightly, her brown eyes still soft and compassionate. She sighed “You have done this to yourself” she reminded the girl with a hint of frustration creeping into her tone.

Marie lowered her eyes guiltily, before she nodded and stood taller again, stepping closer to Anya again. She visibly bit her lips while Anya tried to tend to her wounds as gentle as possible.

They were still bleeding sluggishly now that they had been opened again. “You should keep them uncovered for now” Anya said and discarded the bloodied cloth.

Marie nodded, but she shivered visibly. The temperature was truly starting to drop again as autumn approached and no fire had been lit yet in the fireplace.

Anya put a fur around the girl’s shoulders and tended to the fire herself quickly and only a moment later flames were already dancing in the hearth again.

Marie went over to the couch closest to the fire and sat down.

Ontari had watched the exchange with a frown and her mind was reeling at the information that Marie had caused the wounds to herself singlehandedly. She felt unbelievably sorry for the younger girl, although she could almost understand why Marie must have thought it necessary to have Nia’s kill marks removed from her body.

Marie had felt Ontari’s dark eyes watching her every move and she sighed, she had also noticed the judgement in her gaze towards Anya, so she decided to clear up the situation and told Ontari that she had broken down and cut the skin away herself.

Ontari’s dark eyes looked at the younger girl filled to the brim with compassion and in a show of silent support, she stood and sat down directly next to Marie, putting her uninjured arm around her smaller frame and pulling her against herself without making any comment.

Anya left the commander’s quarters after a moment telling her charges to remain where they were. She had not inquired yet if their own quarters had been completely restored yet and she was unsure if Marie would react well to return to the room anyway. Ontari’s return did complicate matters though and she would need to decide together with Lexa how their sleeping arrangement was supposed to work out from now on.

 

 

Chapter 195

“Why would you hurt yourself like that?” Ontari asked, disbelieve colouring her tone strongly once Marie had stopped her explanation of the origin of her wounds.

Marie huffed, defensive taking over her features “I should not have gotten those kill marks in the first place” she argued clearly agitated now and voice rising with each syllable “I left the two that Lexa and Anya did though” she added after a beat of silence as if that would make the whole thing better somehow. It was obvious that in her mind, it did.

Ontari shook her head in disbelieve “Doing something like that was absolutely foolish” she retorted harshly. Internally Ontari was shocked just how desperate Marie must have been to do something like that. In the privacy of her mind, she could admit to herself that hearing that Marie had hurt herself was frightening her beyond what she would have thought possible and that somehow made her inexplicably angry at the younger girl. She remembered the Skykru healer’s cautioned word that Marie’s trauma may lead her to hurt or even try to kill herself.

Marie pouted and crossed her arms over her chest, she winced slightly because the movement aggravated her wounds, but she did not loosen them either.

Ontari’s features softened slightly at Marie’s obvious discomfort and she sighed, being angry at younger girl would not change anything. She only hoped that the general had concluded from the event that Marie should not be trusted to be alone from now on, who knows if the girl might decide to hurt herself again or even more severely the next time.

“How deep is the wound in your shoulder?” Marie asked, obviously changing tactic and trying to divert Ontari’s attention from herself.

Ontari shrugged with her uninjured shoulder, she did not have eyes in her back, so she had no idea. She could barely move the arm though, so it was reasonable to assume that the man had truly hit her more severely than she had realized during the attack. Almost carrying Aden half of the way through the woods could surely not have helped the injury either.

She hoped that the general was going to allow her a few days of rest before she had to resume her training. Ontari was fairly positive that Marie would be allowed to heal before resuming training if the younger girl were in her stead, but she was unsure of her own standing with the general in that regard. Just because the general was taking stock of her injuries, did not mean automatically that she would take them into account at all.

“Why are we in the commander’s quarters though?” Ontari retorted, redirecting the conversation away from herself as well, while a slight frown rested on her features. It was obvious how at home Marie was again in these rooms, but she herself felt uncomfortable in them, being more than aware that she was not supposed to be here.

Marie winced visibly in reaction, before she responded. Her tone was low and her eyes lowered in what Ontari assumed to be guilt. “I think I have destroyed most of the stuff in our quarters” Marie admitted, biting at her lips.

Ontari blinked at the younger girl in astonishment and shook her head yet again. “Where have you stayed last night then?” she checked, confusion colouring her tone.

Marie’s grey eyes flitted over her shoulder to the commander’s bed minutely. A slight blush dusted over her cheeks and she seemed embarrassed to admit that she had slept in Lexa’s bed again.

Ontari’s brows knitted together in consternated surprise. She was aware of just how much Marie had the commander wrapped around her little finger, but allowing something like that seemed a little extreme, even for the Trikru woman. She was not aware that the younger girl had already spent many nights in the very same bed together with Anya and Lexa, as they had never spoken about it.

Marie stuck her tongue out at the older girl in a truly childish manner and glared into the dancing flames. To her it seemed as if Ontari was excoriating her with her reaction.

Ontari was surprised by the younger girl’s antics, but secretly she was relived to see her act almost carefree or at least freely expressing her emotions again and not trying to suppress everything any longer.

Anya returned in this very moment and immediately wondered about what the girls might have spoken. Marie was glaring into the flames and had not even looked up at her entrance and Ontari’s dark eyes were dancing with silent amusement at Marie’s antics, keeping watch over the younger girl’s every move.

“We can return into our quarters later” Anya proclaimed nonchalantly.

Marie’s face immediately turned into Anya’s direction now and her features visibly fell as worry and disappointment appeared in her grey eyes.

Anya sighed under her breath and her voice was only slightly reprimanding “You knew that we would not be staying in the commander’s quarters”.

Marie nodded begrudgingly and her tone sounded vulnerable “I had thought we could stay a little longer…” she breathed and looked back into the flames with visibly sagged shoulders.

Ontari felt sorry for the younger girl and she addressed the general in a thoughtful tone “I could sleep somewhere else…” She would prefer to stay in their shared quarters, but she would go somewhere else if it helped Marie for now.

Anya shook her head, interrupting the nightblood girl with a strict expression “No, Marie was aware that the arrangement was only an exception”. Her tone did not leave room for any discussion, so Ontari nodded in mute acceptance.

Marie pouted visibly, but Anya completely ignored the blonde girl’s reaction and picked up the report again, she had previously begun to read.

Ontari did not know on how to try to cheer Marie up, so she kept silent although the silence felt rather strained to her.

The atmosphere was cleared slightly when the commander returned some time later. Ontari had been surprised by the fact that Marie had continued to pout the whole time and was still glaring into the flames, not reacting to Lexa’s return in any way.

The commander visibly frowned, while Anya abandoned the report again and nodded at her previous second. She mouthed to the general, inquiring what had upset Marie, but the general only shook her head with a slight roll of her eyes, which prompted the commander’s frown to deepen. She wondered why the girl only had a fur slung around her shoulders and seemed to be naked beneath it, before she noticed that the wounds on her collarbone seemed to have reopened.

She had already been told that Aden and Ontari had returned and had been ambushed on their trek. Lexa had immediately ordered reinforcement to travel the route the conclave had been expected to take. She was worried that the other two groups might have been ambushed as well and she hoped that none of the other nightblood children had been hurt. 

Although Lexa had perfectly understood that Anya had wanted to convey to her to leave Marie stewing and wait for the girl to curb her mood, she felt that speaking with the girl was the better course of action.

The commander discarded her weapons, shoulder pauldron, red sash and cloak quickly, before she stepped directly into Marie’s field of vision, crouching down in front of the girl to meet her eyes with a kind and calm expression.

“What has upset you like this, little star?” she asked lightly in an attempt to prompt a smile onto Marie’s lips.

But it seemed that even her nickname was not enough to calm the young girl now. As if the time she had been left to stew in silence had only increased her agitation into anger, the girl’s grey eyes were blazing heatedly at Lexa and her tone was furious “Anya wants to kill me!” she insisted and pressed her lips into a thin angry line.

Anya startled visibly at the blonde girl’s words and Ontari seemed surprised as well, both of them looking at the young girl in shared bewilderment.

Lexa blinked at Marie in confusion, but she still kept her tone calm “Why do you think that, Marie?” she asked, trying to get the child to express her anger. Abby had warned them that the girl’s emotions might not always be rational now, while she was working through her trauma, and that they should expect surprising and irrational extremes.

Marie ground her teeth together angrily, as the first tears began to run down her cheeks unbidden. She rubbed at them furiously, before Lexa could reach out and brush them away. The words suddenly bubbled from Marie’s mouth, as if she had held them in too long and now could not speak quickly enough to get them out all at once.

“She…she said to the stables master to kill the horse…” Marie tried to get sense into her own thoughts and her grey eyes were staring at Lexa intently, urging her to understand her thoughts somehow, although she could not quiet understand them herself. “Its leg is broken…” she continued, her voice rising in volume with every word “…and I am broken as well…I should be killed as well …and there was a mother with her daughter … on the market … they hugged … she called her mother… I want that as well! … and we will not stay with you!”

Lexa could only blink at the young girl for a moment while her mind tried to process the connection between what had upset the girl like this. It was hard to make sense of what Marie had offered her now.

Anya had pinched the bridge of her nose in agitation. She had already discussed this with Marie before on their own, but as she had feared correctly that the girl had obviously not believed in her words. She thought that she at least now understood what had upset Marie on the market during her brief absence and she sighed again deeply.

Ontari seemed visibly bewildered by what she had just heard. Her mind was still stuck on the fact that Marie seemed to somehow be convinced that she needed to be killed because she was broken. She would have liked to say something to Marie, but she was unsure on what to say and she was fairly certain that Lexa and Anya were better equipped to deal with this. She was uncertain though, if she should stay or leave the room, neither of the women seemed to pay her any mind at the moment any way.

The first thing Lexa did after the initial shock had worn off, was to take Marie’s hands into her own and stopping her to wipe at her cheeks so strongly.  Marie’s hands were visibly shaking and she seemed almost unable to cope with the storm of emotion raging through her mind.

“Breathe, Marie” she ordered the girl, fearing that their charge could be slipping into another panic attack with how erratic her breathing was. When the girl pulled at her hands, trying to free them from her grasp and shook her head, her agitation clearly only rising, Lexa pulled the girl to her feet, turning the girl around in the process and sat down, pulling the girl into a tight hug, forcing her head against her own chest. “Calm down” she tried to sooth the upset girl in a soft tone and when Marie started to cease her struggle against her hold after long moments, she let one hand glide through Marie’s blonde hair gently.

Lexa shook her head at Anya, when she noticed her previous first approaching them. She wanted Marie to solely focus on herself now, hoping that the girl would calm down like this quickest.

Anya did not seem very pleased with being rebuffed like that, but to Ontari’s internal surprise the general remained in the background hovering out of Marie’s sight and not making any sound. Ontari tried to keep quiet and motionless as well, sensing that distracting Marie was not a good idea at the moment.

It seemed to take some time until Marie’s breathing turned a little less erratic and Lexa could feel the change immediately when Marie’s frame lost its tenseness and when the girl clutched her shirt into tight fists. Her anger seemed to have turned into despair and she started to sob loudly all of a sudden.

Ontari watched Marie cry heart wrenchingly in Lexa’s arms for what felt like an eternity to her. The commander continued to caress Marie’s blonde hair gently and was whispering soothing words into the younger girl’s ears constantly, but it seemed as if Marie’s tears did not want to run dry.

Anya wondered if it would have been the better choice to send for Lexa earlier when Marie had asked to see the commander, but she shook such thoughts from her mind. It would not do Marie or any of them any good if they coddled the girl to much now. She was convinced that Marie would regain control over her emotions soon enough simply through time to heal and recover.

When Lexa felt the child’s breathing only hitch occasionally any more, she gently loosened her balled fists from her shirt and turned her a little, so that she could look into her grey eyes again. It physically hurt to see the girl clearly suffering like this, the child seemed exhausted and Lexa mused that Marie was probably overwhelmed by her own feelings right now.

Marie’s grey eyes were bloodshot and red from crying and her features were drawn, she looked small and even younger all of a sudden, encircled in Lexa’s strong arms.

“Now, explain to me again, what has gotten you so upset, Marie” Lexa gently urged the girl as she continued to stare into her grey eyes.

When anger immediately blazed through the child’s grey eyes and her body stiffened again, Lexa shook her head, her expression turned strict for a moment. “No, explain it to me calmly” Lexa ordered with a hint of strictness in her tone and resumed caressing the girl’s hair, calming her down instantly again.

Marie sighed, her breathing hitched once and she seemed to contemplate on how to start to explain what had happened. “You know that I went with Anya to look at the caravan from the Plain Riders” the girl finally started after taking a deep breath, obviously trying hard now to reign in her own temper.

Lexa nodded with a patient expression, but remained silent and gave the girl time to voice her thoughts now that she had calmed.

“Anya listened to one of them report what they had lost” Marie recounted what had happened with a slightly far-away look on her face “And …” she stopped for a moment and her brows creased when she remembered another detail. “Some of the warriors whispered about me” she grumbled, a hint of anger seeping back into her tone “They think I am loyal to the queen now…” she huffed in obvious agitation and her lips formed a displeased thin line.

Lexa inclined her head in acknowledgment, she would not have expected it otherwise, Kato’s reaction had been enough proof that others would likely share his opinion, at least those who did not know the sweet child personally. “Which you are not” she commented without a sliver of doubt, voice calm and green eyes kind and intent, waiting for Marie to continue. She could fathom that it would be frustrating for Marie to be confronted with distrust, the girl had not chosen to be with Nia, but no one knew exactly what had happened to Marie or under which circumstances she had vanished or returned to Polis. It was no wonder that rumours had spread through the clans. Lexa and Anya would need to think of a way for Marie to show her continued loyalty to her as the commander for the rumours to stop soon, or Lexa feared they would continue indefinite.

Marie seemed slightly surprised by the commander’s easy assurance and awe flitted over her features openly for a moment, before she noticed the waiting expression on Lexa’s face and she continued. Lexa was internally slightly irritated to note on the girl’s obvious aw, Marie should not have any reason to doubt her own standing with them any longer. “There were two groups of horses, the injured horses were separated from the others” the child said “One of the injured horses had broken free and returned to the others. They all seemed unsettled by it…” it was obvious that Marie did not truly grasp why the other horses had reacted in such a way to their injured companion.

“The warrior said that the horse would need to be killed” Marie continued with clearly rising agitation, before awe returned to her expression “It is really beautiful. It has three eyes and a second pair of ears”.

The corners of Lexa’s lips ghosted up into the hint of a smile at Marie’s apparent fascination with the mutated horse.

“But its leg is broken…” Marie continued, the awe had left her features and she looked crestfallen now “Does it really have to be killed?” she asked, the hint of a plea in her tone now and her grey eyes seemed to beg Lexa to save the horse.

Lexa sighed under her breath and she tightened her arms around Marie for a moment “If its leg is truly broken, it would be cruel to let it suffer the pain” she reasoned with their charge in a compassionate tone.

Marie nodded slightly, clearly unwilling to accept this fact just yet and she looked away from Lexa into the flames for long moments. Lexa waited for Marie to continue as the girl had not made the connection between the market and the horse yet, so she knew that the story was not finished.

“I am sure that the stables master will do all in his power to save it though, Marie” Lexa amended after another beat of silence and was internally pleased when Marie’s grey eyes returned to her face instantly in reaction.

Marie nodded again, hope flitting through her eyes that the horse may still be saved.

Lexa was convinced already that the horse would belong to Marie, if it could be saved somehow. She would inquire what the stables master’s opinion was on the matter as soon as possible.

When Marie remained silent and only stared at Lexa mutely, the commander bit back another sigh and she chose her next words very carefully “You realize that your situation cannot be compared to that of the horse, Marie?”

Lexa paused for a moment until Marie had inclined her head with a doubtful expression. The doubt flitting over the child’s features seemed to run deeply in her mind and Lexa felt it tear at her own heart painfully.

“You are not a horse, Marie” Lexa continued. She had hoped that Marie would explain more in depth why she had come to this insane conclusion that she should be killed as well, but she was fairly sure that reassuring Marie was the best choice of action now. “You may think now that you are only useful to us as our second…” Lexa continued and had purposefully included Anya in her argument.

Judging from the general’s expression, the older woman had already tried to explain to Marie her error in her way of thinking and had clearly failed to make the girl understand just how important she was to them.

“…but you know very well that this is not the case, Marie” Lexa tried to explain to Marie in a gentle but intent tone “We both love you as if you were our own and we would not think to discard you like that ever, Marie. You have to know that”. A slight hint of desperation had seeped into her tone at the last part, Lexa was at her wits end with the girl and could not understand herself how they should ever proof this to the child.

A small part of Lexa was internally fearing that their charge was truly doubting their love now in addition. They had hoped that they would be able to support Marie adequately with their love, but if the girl was starting to doubt that now, it would become even more complicated to help her.

A single tear ran down Marie’s cheek and Lexa caught it before it could fall down her face. Marie nodded and although she did look convinced there still seemed to be a conflict in her grey eyes.

“What is it, Marie?” Lexa gently urged Marie to give voice to what was troubling her now.

Marie bit at her lips for a moment and she looked into Lexa’s green eyes for long moments, searching for something in them.

Lexa did not know what it was that Marie was searching for, but she remained calm, intent on granting their charge the time she obviously needed to sort through her thoughts.

Marie sighed and Lexa thought to spot fear in her grey eyes, before she breathed “I do not want to be both of your second any longer…”

 

 

Chapter 196

Anya blinked at the girl in astonishments. For a moment it felt as if her mind was blank, unable to process what the child had just said. Before it fell into utter chaos. Confusion, disappointment, hurt and even anger battling with each other.

She opened her mouth to snarl at the girl what had gotten into herself now, but was silenced by Lexa before she could utter a word.

Lexa herself was trying hard to keep her expression calm and not come to a conclusion before she had understood what the girl actually meant. Anya had told her that the girl’s training was still progressing well and Marie had never mentioned even a hint of not wanting to function as a warrior any longer.

Ontari was utterly bewildered as well. She was convinced that Marie had been fairly happy in her position as the commander’s and general’s second.

Marie seemed unsure all of a sudden and she looked between Lexa and Anya shrinking down in size in Lexa’s arms and her tone was subdued “I want to be more…” she tried to explain herself.

“More?” Lexa echoed with a creased brow. She did not understand what Marie could become which would outrank being their second.

Marie nodded, but she did not seem willing to elaborate and remained silent, only looking at Lexa with pleading eyes as if she was pleading the commander to read her thoughts and understand her wish without having to spell it out to them.

Anya contemplated what Marie might be meaning, but she failed to come to a conclusion that made sense. She tried to control her own emotions, at least convinced now that Marie was not rejecting them all of a sudden without any reason, which appeased her at least slightly. The girl could not become more than the commander’s second, there simply was no higher position of honour for her.

 “Marie, I do not think that there is another higher position you could…” Lexa began to say, brows creased and obviously as confused as Anya and Ontari.

Marie shook her head vehemently, interrupting the commander and her tone had taken on a hint of impatience. She was obviously agitated that neither of them was understanding her, like she had hoped. “I did not mean any position” she exclaimed, her voice rising slightly, before she got quieter again “I want to be able to call you Mom…”

Lexa had to strain her ears, to catch what Marie had said at the end. She bandied a look with Anya quickly, finding her own astonishment reflected in her mentor’s brown eyes.

Marie was fiddling with a few strands of the furs, pulling at them clearly restless now. It was obvious that this was something that had bothered her for some time now.

Anya looked down at the girl in disbelieve, her thoughts had quitted down instantly and she found it hard to wrap her mind around the concept. They were not the girl’s mother by blood nor would they ever be. They may think of her as a daughter to them but they had not given voice to that yet. It at least made sense that the girl’s mood had plummeted after watching the interaction between mother and daughter on the market. She had already wanted to speak with Lexa about Marie’s obvious wish for a more binding bond with them. She felt slightly foolish now, for not having come to this conclusion sooner already, it had been rather obvious after all.

Lexa’s expression had softened visibly and her green eyes seemed to swim in emotion. “You can call me whatever it is that you want” she offered immediately in an honest tone and caressed the girl’s cheeks softly when her grey eyes snapped up, clearly startled by her answer.

Although Marie seemed relieved that the answer had not been a complete rejection, she still did not appear utterly satisfied.

Anya crouched down in front of Lexa, so that she could look at Marie’s face as well. She had noticed that Lexa had probably purposefully not included her in the statement to give her the chance to make up her own decision.

Although she found it particularly hard to speak openly about her feelings Anya knew how important it was for Marie. She was not certain, if she would have preferred for Ontari not to be present for this particular conversation. But she hoped that the nightblood girl would also profit somehow from watching them being so caring and open with Marie.

She put a hand on Marie’s shoulder carefully, trying not to startle the girl in the process and mindful of her wounds. When Marie had turned her grey eyes to meet her gaze Anya said “I would feel honoured if you want to call me something else, Marie, as I already regard you as more than just my second”.

Marie smiled a watery smile at the general and nodded.

Anya sighed under breath after she had bandied another look with the commander. “There is a ceremony that would allow me to officially claim you as mine” she mentioned voice slightly hesitant.

Marie’s grey eyes instantly shone with a mixture out of a deep sense of longing, hope and excitement that something like this could be possible. “Like an adoption?” she asked meekly after a short beat of silence.

Anya’s brows furrowed as she was unfamiliar with the term, but Lexa inclined her head. The commander knew that term from books from the old word “It is similar to what an adoption in the old world used to be” she agreed.

Internally Lexa was frantically searching for a possibility to be able to offer Marie the same courtesy. But she was unsure of how such an act would be perceived by the clans. Now that they were on the brink of another war, she could not risk to cause any additional unrest in the clans. Hopefully she could some day offer to do the ceremony with Marie as well, for now it would have to do to allow the child to call her whatever she desired to. She would still discuss the matter with Titus, the flamekeeper should be able to give her another opinion in the matter, although Lexa was already rather certain that the bald man’s reaction would be negative. There had never been a commander to have a child and although Marie would of course never be hers by blood, it would still be a rather severe break with tradition if she were to claim her as such.

Marie smiled openly now, clearly excited at the prospect. “Can I think about what I want to call both of you?” she checked, her eyes flitting between them.

Lexa inclined her head with amusement dancing through her eyes. She was fairly certain that the child would have thought about it already, but it was probably a tough decision for her and Marie did not want to settle on an imperfect title.

Anya nodded as well. The general was slightly startled to feel that a lump had formed in her throat and she had to clear her throat awkwardly. 

Marie smiled brightly at the general and loosened herself from Lexa slightly, slinging her arms around Anya’s neck and giving her a quick hug.

When the girl backed off again, her expression had turned slightly sheepish and her gaze was apologetic “I am sorry that I snapped at you …” She was well aware that she had overstepped with her mood previously and she hoped that neither of them was angry at her.

“We shall work on your mood swings” Anya admonished the girl, her tone still soft. She hoped that the girl would learn quickly to curb her tongue and keep better control over her mood. The child had not been particularly explosive before, so it was reasonable to assume that it would get better with time as well.

Marie looked even more sheepish for a moment, before her gaze suddenly snapped to Ontari. Defensiveness flashed through her grey eyes. The nightblood had already not understood that they had spent the last night in Lexa’s bed. Marie had completely forgotten about Ontari’s presence and she was almost fearing a negative judging reaction to what had just occurred.

Ontari was a little floored by what she had just witnessed. She could understand Marie’s train of thought at least to a certain degree or rather the wish to call her mentors her mother was very in character for the younger girl, she had wanted to make sisters out of them as well after all. She did not know if there was any form of such a ceremony in the Ice Nation as well or not, at least she could not remember ever hearing of such an occurrence at all.

Since coming to Polis Ontari had already learned not to judge everything and if being able to call the commander and the general as her mother made Marie happy than it would be a good thing and nothing, she would condemn the younger girl for.

She still did not know what to say though, so she kept silent. Ontari was saved from actually saying something, when the door to the commander’s quarters was opened suddenly.

Clarke strode into the room, carrying a basket with supplies in her hands. She stopped in her track all of a sudden when she spotted Lexa with Marie in her arms, Anya still crouched before her and Ontari sitting awkwardly on the couch next to them. The blonde blinked at the scene before her, but the healer in her immediately spotted the sling around Ontari’s arm and the fact that Marie had only a fur wrapped around her back.

She noticed how Anya’s brown eyes looked suspiciously wet and Lexa seemed to be deeply moved as well. Clarke wondered what she had just missed, but she was fairly certain that the commander would tell her later.

Anya was the first to straighten herself and stand up again. Her voice was gruff as she addressed Clarke “Ontari’s shoulder needs to be looked at”.

Clarke huffed under her breath at the general’s aloof antics, but she inclined her head and motioned the nightblood girl to follow her into the bathroom.

Marie had burrowed herself back against Lexa’s upper body when she had noticed Clarke’s arrival. It was obvious that the girl was having a hard time processing that she had finally articulated what must have been bugging her for a long time. Anya hypothesized that the child would have probably already thought about something like this long before the Mountain even, while Lexa and she still had been convinced that being a first to the girl would be enough.

Lexa caressed the girl’s blonde hair softly, letting her hand glide over her back additionally “You have calmed down now?” she checked, the hint of a tease in her tone.

Marie had picked up on that and a blush instantly dusted over her cheeks, as she nodded her head in mute agreement.

Lexa smiled at her and gently pushed the girl from her lap to sit next to her on the couch. “About staying here…” Lexa started to say.

Anya looked down at the commander with thinned lips “Staying here was only an exception” she interrupted the commander in a sharp tone.

Lexa’s green eyes were disparaging at being interrupted like that and she knew that her previous mentor would not be pleased with her next words, before she actually said them. “Marie can stay in my quarters whenever she wishes to” she declared, voice ringing with finality and Lexa was completely unfazed by the general’s glare.

Internally, Anya was seething. Marie would never understand and stick to the rules and boundaries if Lexa went around and undermined her just like that. But she knew that Lexa as the commander would always be able to just undermined her authority like that with Marie if she wished, she would still need to speak alone with Lexa to instil into her former second that they would need to agree on a few basic things. She would only antagonise Marie if she now disagreed with Lexa in front of the girl.

Before she could say anything, which she would regret later, Anya walked into the bathroom behind Clarke and Ontari. It could not hurt to inspect the nightblood girl’s wound herself after all.

Lexa looked behind her general with a sigh, while Marie frowned.

“Is Anya angry at me?” the child immediately asked once the door to the bathroom had fallen shut rather loudly.

Lexa shook her head in the negative and assured “Anya is angry at me, not you, Marie”. Although she still felt the girl’s grey eyes resting on her imploringly, Lexa ignored the silent question. “You have been thinking about this a long time, have you not?” she asked instead, trying to divert the girl’s attention.

Lexa knew that Marie should not harbour any ill will towards Anya and she guessed that the girl would side with her if Marie understood why Anya was angry at all, which would only increase the general’s rightful anger against herself.

Marie gnawed at her lips, looking into the flames, obviously feeling awkward now. She remained silent for long moments and her voice was low as she mumbled “You are not angry, right?”

Lexa shook her head in denial “Of course not” she quickly reassured the girl. She guessed that Marie thought it weird that Anya had offered to claim her as her own and she herself had not done the same. “As the commander, I cannot promise you to ever be able to claim you as my own child, like Anya offered” Lexa said in a grave tone, regret flashing through her green eyes at being once again restricted by her station and her duties. Internally she doubted that she would ever be free of those restrictions, although she had begun to long to be freer in certain aspects of her life.

“But you would, if you could?” Marie asked after a beat of silence. She had begun to fiddle with a few strands of the fur again, obviously nervous that she might be rejected.

Lexa stopped the girl’s nervous movements by giving her hands a soft squeeze and her tone was soft and honest as she assured “Of course, I would”.

Marie smiled slightly “Than that is fine” she concluded.

Lexa had looked deeply into Marie’s grey eyes and was relieved that she could not spot disappointment in them.

“Can you ask the stables master after the horse?” Marie asked next in a hopeful tone.

Lexa inclined her head “I will” she agreed without any hesitation. She could even go out in a few minutes and inspect the horse herself. It would still be around a candle mark before dinner was served which would offer her more than enough time for the trip.

“You can accompany me, if you wish” Lexa offered in a kind tone to Marie. The girl nodded enthusiastically immediately, standing from the couch only a beat later.

“You might consider donning on a shirt though” Lexa commented, trying hard to keep the amusement out of her tone.

Marie looked slightly reprimanded for a moment, but she accepted the dark shirt Lexa offered to her with a grateful nod without saying anything. The shirt was still too big for her, but tugging the extra material into her trousers minimized the problem.

“You have grown” Lexa commented as she watched the girl dress. The shirt was still definitely too long for her, but it was obvious that Marie had had a growth spurt during her absence from Polis. She would still need to grow a lot to fill out the commander’s shirt.

Marie looked thoughtful and seemed to try to inspect here own body. It would be reasonable that she had grown in the last six months.

Lexa watched the girl out of the corner of her eyes on their way through the tower and towards the stables. She was internally relieved to note that the child seemed relaxed again. It was hard to understand that Marie could switch between anger and encompassing sadness at one moment and be smiling and happy at the next moment just like that.

Marie even went so far to take her hand once they had entered the stables and physically pull the commander in the direction of the box where the injured horse had been when she had last seen it. Lexa let herself be handled by the girl with amusement dancing through her green eyes, she was thankful that the girl had been mindful enough to keep her distance on the streets though. The warriors working in the stables were watching them already with slight surprise flitting over their features as they bowed to the commander.

Excited impatience was clear on Marie’s face as she pulled Lexa along through the boxes. She ignored the commander’s horses neighing at her in greeting and Lexa noted that they even looked slightly miffed to be ignored like that by Marie.

“Look” Marie immediately ordered with shining eyes once they reached the box with the horse.

To Marie’s great relieve the horse was still inside and very much alive, it also neighed at her with flicking ears, as if it already recognized her.

Lexa inspected the horse through the fence. The animal was enormous and would make a fine war horse, it was really a shame that it had injured one of its front legs. Marie immediately pushed her hand through the fence, petting the horse’s nose softly.

Lexa was once again surprised that yet another horse was obviously calmed by Marie’s touch and accepted the girl so easily. She turned from Marie slightly, when she heard footsteps rushing towards them and Lexa noticed the stables master hurrying in their direction.

The burly man inclined his head respectfully to his commander “Heda” he addressed her.

Lexa nodded as well in silent acknowledgement before her eyes shortly returned to the horse “Do you think it can be saved?” she asked outright.

The man had a contemplative expression on his face and he seemed to measure his response carefully. It was obvious that he had understood how important the survival of the horse was to the commander’s second and he did not wish to dissatisfy his commander like that.

“I am fairly certain that is appendage is broken” he assessed in a cautious tone “It may heal alright though. But it can only heal, if the leg is splinted appropriately and allowed time to rest for the bone to mend itself. It is not guaranteed that it can use it normally ever again”.

One look into Marie’s deeply hopeful grey eyes, was enough to sway Lexa’s logical mind “Try your best then” she ordered.

The stables master was visibly surprised for a moment, but he quickly gathered himself, nodding his head in acceptance and calling some of his men to help. “It might be helpful if she stayed while we splint it” he suggested looking over at Marie.

Marie nodded immediately, she would of course do anything to help.

Lexa remained slightly behind Marie, watching on as the girl calmed the horse down through a few whispered words and a few gentle touches, so that the warriors were able to work efficiently on it without much struggle at all.

The stables master shook his head in amused denial when Marie tried to reason with the horse that it now needed to cease all unnecessary movement, so that its leg could heal as quick as possible. “I do not think, that it will have any use” the man commented, a laugh had crept into his tone.

Marie lightly glared at him over her shoulder for a moment, before she leaned even closer to the horse and whispered something in its ear.

To the stables master’s great bewilderment, the horse instantly ceased all movements and remained perfectly still even as Marie backed off.

The girl looked up at the man with a challenging glint in her grey eyes and after the man had blinked in amazed confusion at the horse once, he did a low bow in front of the girl.

Marie was startled by the gesture and looked to Lexa, grey eyes showing her helplessness. Lexa laughed at the scene, shook her head with amusement dancing through her green eyes and motioned the girl to follow her out of the stables “We shall return now, little star, dinner will be served soon” she proclaimed “We shall ad horse conqueror to your titles” she added with a teasing hint to her tone.

Marie scowled visibly at the commander but bit back her probably pouty comment once they stepped out of the stables.   

 

 

Chapter 197

Ontari walked over into the bathroom in silence, Clarke on her heels.

The nightblood removed her injured arm from the sling with a slight hiss, even though she had bit lightly at her lips to stop it from escaping, the pain shooting through her arm and shoulder had been like a hot blade pushed through her flesh. She tried to shrug out of the shirt on her own as well, but she was not truly successful.

Clarke lightly rolled her eyes at the younger girl, it was obvious how damned proud the nightblood was and asking for help to undress did not even seem to cross her mind. Clarke put the basket with supplies on a cupboard and approached Ontari “Let me” she offered in a kind tone.

Ontari whirled around to face the blonde healer and hesitance visibly flashed over her features. She seemed to contemplate the offer for quiet a few moments until she subtly inclined her head and let her injured arm fall back to her side.

Clarke smiled kindly at the girl and carefully removed the shirt from her body, trying not to jostle the injured limp. The grounder healer who had already taken care of the girl had applied a bandage around her torso and Clarke carefully removed the layers as well.

“I will need to remove those as well” Clarke said, keeping her tone light, as her fingers rested on the girl’s chest wrap. Clarke had already learned that grounders had a different opinion regarding nudity, but she was still sometimes thinking in ways that were more common of the Ark and there she would have never removed another’s underwear without at least asking for permission beforehand.

Ontari nodded again mutely and stood stock still, as Clarke unwound the chest wrap from her body.

Clarke’s blue eyes flitted over the girl’s revealed skin shortly. She had already heard from Marie and Anya that Ontari had not been treated well by the Ice queen, but seeing all these scars layering her skin was a brutal testament to just how badly she had been brought up. It was no wonder that the girl was carrying herself with such aloof pride and cold indifference. Clarke wondered if the nightblood would have ever shown another façade of herself, had it not been for Marie.

It was obvious that the girl was on the verge of growing into a woman and her chest already showed a subtle raise where her breasts were forming. Clarke was astounded to see just how muscular the girl was, even though her general built was rather slender; although Lexa’s body did not look that different.

Clarke stepped behind Ontari and carefully removed the piece of cloths that had still been stuck onto Ontari’s wound, prompting another pained hiss from the dark-haired girl.

“Sorry” Clarke said under her breath, although she already bent down and leaved through her supplies, searching for an antiseptic tonic which should also numb the pain of the wound. The stitches had been done roughly and uneven, they would undoubtedly leave a thick scar behind, but Clarke somehow doubted that Ontari would care even the slightest bit about that. She could have done a finer job at that herself, if the stitches held in place there would be no rational reason to remove them and redo them, simply to reduce the scaring.

Anya pushed the door to the bathroom open rather forceful and Clarke instantly noted how the general’s brown eyes were blazing.

Clarke frowned and wondered what had upset the Trikru woman, but she knew her well enough already not to bother to ask. If Anya wanted her to know something, she would tell her.

“How long will she be unable to train?” Anya immediately asked, stepping behind Ontari as well and looking at the wound. The wound was rather large which indicated that the bandit truly had gotten a deep hit with his axe on the girl. She internally feared that it would take too long to heal for the nightblood to march into Ice Nation with them once the army was ready to leave.

Clarke softly pressed onto the wound, wanting to see if the stitches had been done tightly enough. To her chagrin, she had to note several spots where drops of black blood already gathered against the girl’s pale skin. She sighed under her breath “The stitches have not been done well” she mused with a disparaging tone.

Ontari visibly flinched under the blonde’s touch when Clarke exerted a little more force.

Anya frowned with a raised brow “They need to be redone?” she asked as a little impatience flitted into her tone.

Ontari twisted around under Clarke’s hand and vehemently shook her head “They will do” she immediately claimed rather sharply and bent down to take up her shirt from the floor.

Clarke opened her mouth to argue with the nightblood, leaving the wound like this could easily lead to an infection or the stitches could just break open completely once she stretched the shoulder a little too far.

Anya’s lips had thinned visibly and she abruptly tugged the shirt out of Ontari’s hands before the nightblood could redress. Her voice was sharp as she ordered “You will have them redone, if it is necessary!” The volume of her voice had risen with each word and it was clear that she would not accept any contradiction from her charge now.

Ontari seemed to understand this as well. Reluctance was clear in her dark eyes as she stared at the general in silence.

Clarke mused that the girl was probably mentally regarding her options and chances to sway the general or trying to assess the general’s mood. Anya had never seemed like a woman who would accept any nonsense after all.

Begrudgingly the nightblood lowered her eyes and followed Clarke’s calmly spoken order to sit down on a stool. The girl was too tale to allow Clarke to comfortably work on her shoulder while she stood.

Clarke and Ontari were both likewise surprised when Anya mutely took another stool and sat down opposite of Ontari, clearly intent to offer some support to the nightblood girl.

Clarke shook her head behind Ontari’s back at the general’s antics, she still found it hard to reconcile the strict and serene general with the clearly deeply caring mentor figure. She shook her head again slightly, focusing on the task at hand now. She felt a little sorry the nightblood girl, Clarke knew that opening the wound would be painful.

“Do you want something against the pain?” Clarke asked the girl directly, but she was not surprised when Ontari vehemently shook her head.

Anya must have anticipated the girl’s response as well and she did not try to sway her mind as well.

Clarke knew that grounders rarely liked to rely on medics to numb pain, preferring to suffer through the pain as a sign of strength, but in her opinion, it was just needless suffering. She could understand that someone doing guard duty could not take something which would influence the mind, but they were well protected in the tower, so there should not be a reason to suffer like this.

She nodded to Anya once and watched how the woman briskly took hold of Ontari’s hands. Clarke did not know if the general wanted to immobilize the girl, but she guessed that she just wished to show her comfort. Without any other forewarning, Clarke sliced through the stitches with a small sharp blade, removing them as quickly as possible.

Thick black blood immediately ran down the girl’s back and although Ontari had looked rather bewildered at Anya only a moment ago, she now squeezed the woman’s hands strongly in her grasp, hissing under her breath and trying to sit as still as possible.

Anya did not say anything, but just held the girl’s gaze mutely, waiting patiently until Clarke finished.

Ontari winced visibly every time Clarke pushed the needle and thread through her skin, but Clarke internally had to give her credit for keeping silent and still like this without any medication against the pain. The nightblood still breathed a heavy sigh of relieve, when Clarke wiped the wound with a tonic and applied another bandage around the area.

“I would advise to keep the arm immobilized for at the very least a week” Clarke said, directing her words towards Anya primarily “Two weeks would be better though. I am worried that there might be nerve or ligament damage if she moves the arm too early”.

The general nodded, although a slight grimace flitted over her features.

Ontari tried to argue with the general that she would be fit to train with the other arm the very next day and Clarke listened to the argument with horror creeping into her mind.

“…Nia has never cared if I could move, had a broken bone or something else” Ontari retorted strongly “I can wield a sword with the other arm well enough”.

Anya shook her head with a strict expression “You have heard Clarke’s advice. You will not train for two weeks” she said, finality ringing in her tone and her brown eyes looked at the girl impatiently.

Ontari ground her teeth together, clearly angry at the situation “But…” she began to argue, but closed her mouth with an audible snap when the general glared at her darkly.

The woman’s patience was clearly waning and Ontari knew better than to test her like this. Marie might get away with it, but she would not test her luck now. She accepted the shirt from Anya mutely and also let the woman help her dress into it.

Clarke constructed another sling for her “You can take it off to sleep, but for the rest of the day, you should wear it, it will enhance the time of healing”.

Ontari inclined her head silently and let the blonde healer put the sling into place patiently. She followed Anya out of the bathroom and was slightly surprised to see the room abandoned. She frowned and turned to Anya questioningly.

Alira stepped into the commander’s quarters in this very moment, two younger women accompanied her, carrying trays filled with dinner and drinks. Risha followed the woman on her heel, wagging her tail at Anya in greeting.

The wolf floundered through the room, sniffing at Anya’s hand until the general let her fingers glide through the wolf’s fur at least once. Risha’s icy blue eyes turned to Ontari next and the nightblood tensed in anticipation. Although she knew now that the wolf would not hurt her intentionally, she was still not completely comfortable in the animal’s close proximity. She kept her uninjured hand perfectly still when Risha stepped closer to her and sniffed at it as well.

Clarke clicked her tongue at the wolf and the animal turned from Ontari and enthusiastically greeted the blonde healer as well. Clarke had come to treasure the wolf’s company in the last weeks. She had thought that it looked really impressive, when Lexa sat on her throne, Risha at her feet looking around the ambassadors with her sharp eyes. Risha had kept the commander good company during Marie’s absence and it had seemed as if they had drawn strength from each other in a way.

“The commander is in the stables” Alira answered to Anya who had asked after Lexa’s location.

“Of course” Anya huffed with a role of her eyes, her mood plummeting immediately. In her opinion the commander was spoiling their second rotten and she doubted that was a good thing.

When Marie returned, the girl was on her own. She was all smiles and shining grey eyes, so Anya easily concluded that the commander had found a way for the horse to be saved, indulging the girl yet again.

Marie immediately launched into a lively narration of what had transpired at the stables with the horse. Ontari found it hard to believe that the horse had listened to the blonde girl’s words like she claimed.

“…but it did stop moving!” Marie claimed rather loudly, a pout on her lips and a challenging glint in her grey eyes.

Anya was torn between reprimanding Marie for claiming something like this, as she was convinced that the girl was exaggerating in her narration, and being slightly miffed with Ontari. Although she was not for coddling the girl, she was still cautious trying not to dampen Marie’s good mood. The moments where they saw the child so happy, were rare and Anya did not wish to dull them in any way.

~ ~ ~

Lexa had sent Marie ahead into her quarters, she had heard that Aden had been injured as well and she wished to see to the blonde boy before tomorrow morning. It would probably also do some good if Clarke tried to acquittance herself a little better with Marie and Ontari, without her presence to communicate between them.

The floor of the conclave was quiet, when the commander entered. Guards were scattered around the halls, she had still not decreased their numbers and was not planning to either.

The younger nightbloods were still in a lesson with Rana, so only Aden should be in their shared rooms. A healer had been sent to Aden as well to assess the wound on his leg again. Lexa dearly hoped that his injury was nothing too serious. A nightblood who had a lasting injury would have highly diminished chances in the next conclave and Lexa was still convinced that Aden was a likely candidate to rise after her. With Ontari now in the picture, the outcome of the conclave would be questionable, but Lexa still thought that Aden would make a good commander.

The blonde boy had been lying in his bed and he tried to scramble to attention when her entrance woke him from his light doze.

Lexa waved for him to remain seated, he should not be putting any strain on the injury. “What did the healer say?” she inquired kindly, stepping closer to the boy’s bed.

“Heda” Aden greeted her respectfully, lowering his head in reverence for a moment, before he answered her question “Nothing major was injured. It should heal quickly” he reassured “I can train tomorrow”.

Lexa shook her head “You are not expected to partake physical training for the next days. It is important to let a wound heal fully. You might become comma…”

Aden interrupted her with a shake of his head and his expression looked crestfallen “I would not make a worthy commander” his voice was heavy and laden with guilt.

Lexa looked down at the blonde boy with a slight frown and let herself sink on the edge of the bed. “Why do you think that, Aden?” she inquired in a calm tone. She looked into his blue eyes deeply and was surprised to note grave disappointment in them.

“I failed you, Heda” he confessed, blue eyes slightly tearing up and his shoulders sagged in defeat.

“I am sure that you are exaggerating” Lexa mused kindly. She had not yet heard a full report on what had happened, only that the both of them had been ambushed by rouge bandits after the guards who had been supposed to protect them had already been taken out. “Tell me what has happened” she urged the boy, keeping her eyes patient and soft.

Aden swallowed heavily against a lump in his throat. “I fell asleep, although I had been supposed to keep guard” the boy admitted, features drawn in disappointment with himself.

Lexa inclined her head in silent acknowledgment and listened on how the boy explained the fight with the bandits. It was obvious that the blonde boy was shook deeply by what had transpired. Lexa listened patiently and carefully kept her expression blank, not allowing any judgement to filter on her face.

She placed some blame with herself. Lexa was aware that the nightbloods were not prepared well for such a situation. That had been the whole sense of sending guards closely behind them. The experience had been supposed to feel real to the conclave, although there had never been supposed to be any kind of grave danger for the children. Lexa and Titus had severely underestimated the dangers still lurking around the woods. They had thought about the possibility of the conclave encountering wild animals, the numbers of guards following behind them would have been large enough to sufficiently deal this kind of threat. Lexa was irritated that the bandits still remained so high number, they were obviously well organized as well. She had already sent some of her warriors to eliminate them weeks ago, but they had not been as successful as the reports had eluded her to think.

Not all criminals were subjected to a death penalty in the clans. For minor crimes criminals could be outcast from their clans. Added together with those who had been cast out of their clans because their blood lines had been sullied by deformed children, and those who deliberately choose to leave their clans and the rules of the coalition, the number of bandits could be much higher than Lexa had previously thought possible. It would be disastrous if all the outcasts and bandits sided with Ice Nation for example. She had more than enough warriors at hand to drive the bandits from the woods and back into the Dead Zone. She would need to officially make it illegal for any one not belonging to a clan any more to reside on her lands. She was positive that the clans would easily agree to her plan and Titus had already tried to get her to do this some time ago. Lexa had hesitated because she still thought it unfair to put those under a kill order that had chosen to leave the coalition.

Once Aden had finished his narration, the boy’s blue eyes turned slightly more determined. He was obviously prepared to take whatever judgement Lexa would hand out with a raised head.

Lexa dearly hoped that the other two groups of the conclave had not run into bandits as well. It was worrying her greatly, that they had not yet returned to Polis. She put a hand on the boy’s shoulders reassuringly “Aden, although falling asleep at guard duty is undoubtedly not a well-done task, you could not have predicted what happened. You both have fought well and worked together. You have returned to safety and aided each other” Lexa surmised, she would not accuse Aden of failure.

“We have not managed to get to the token” Aden claimed, still looking slightly troubled.

Lexa shook her head “This trek had never been supposed to be about reaching the token, Aden”.

“About what then?” the blonde boy asked immediately.

“Can you not think of another goal?” the commander inquired in a calm tone, slipping back into the role of a teacher seamlessly.

Aden thought for a moment, his expression turned contemplative and took him a little time before he formulated an answer “We needed to work with each other. Fending for ourselves outside of the tower”.

Lexa inclined her head “Even a commander cannot rule without support” she sighed “But all of you will need other forms of education from now on”.

The boy nodded gravely and watched the commander leave in silence.

Hi guys, just to let you know. I have decided to take a step back, slow down the pace and focus more energy into revising the story. I have started to reread it and found around the first 100 chapters completely not matching to my writing style now. In a lot of places, it feels like there are feelings and descriptions missing and I have the pressing need to change that. I know that I have decided to do quiet a lot of work that way. But I do not feel like continuing to write at the moment. I hope, you can understand that. I still have a few chapters prewritten which I can post. I hope that you still like the latest chapters.

 

 

Chapter 198

Marie’s good mood all but evaporated when Anya proclaimed that it was time to turn in for the night. Lexa had returned to her quarters some time ago and Marie had switched from Anya’s side to Lexa’s instantly and had not moved an inch since then.

Although the child had seemed close to dozing off, she was apparently wide awake again now. A deep scowl rested on her features as she glared at Anya.

Ontari kept silent, trying to merge with the couch unobtrusively, feeling utterly out of place witnessing this scene. In all honesty, she was tired and had been relieved to hear the general say that they would retire now.

Clarke seemed rather uncomfortable as well, looking between Anya and Lexa alternately, clearly indecisive on what to say or rather keeping silent would be the better choice.

“I will not repeat myself” Anya addressed Marie in a sharp tone, looking down at the girl expectantly, clearly having no intent to argue with the girl now.

Marie’s scowl turned into an outright pout and she turned pleading eyes to Lexa in the hopes of convincing the commander to let her stay.

Lexa only shortly looked at her former mentor, the woman’s brown eyes were angry and mutely warning her not to contradict her outright in front of Marie.

“I already told you, that you are welcome to sleep here, if you prefer that” Lexa looked down at Marie with a kind expression.

Marie frowned, clearly not satisfied at all with this suggestion.

Clarke sighed, it had not been wise of Lexa to make the suggestion in the first place. It was obvious, that Marie was now torn between the choice of where to sleep. “Why don’t you try to go to sleep in your quarters?” she interrupted the argument, trying to appease both women. Although Lexa looked calm, her jaw was clenched slightly and she was clearly irritated by Anya’s behaviour. “You can always come over later” she added with a kind smile to Marie.

Marie nodded with a cautious expression. The girl must have realized that Anya would not budge and trotted behind the general and Ontari a moment later, shoulders dropped in clear disappointment. Risha followed on the girl’s heels, brushing her nose under one of her hands and walking with contact to one of the girl’s legs. The girl’s disappointment had apparently turned into sulkiness on the short way to their shared quarters.

Ontari was simply relieved to be back in their quarters and she immediately let herself drop down on her bed. She frowned down at her feet, getting of her boots with only one hand was not such an easy task.

Marie lightly glared at Anya after the general had closed the door behind them.

Anya sighed under her breath, she did not like the feeling that settled into the pit of her stomach at watching Marie being so upset and knowing that she was at least partly the cause of it. “You must realize that it is not possible for all three of us to move into the commander’s quarters permanently” the woman argued with her charge.

Marie huffed, lips pulled into a pout and she stepped around the general without another word, shrugging out of her clothes and slipping into her own bed in record time. Risha jumped onto the child’s bed as well and Marie immediately put her arms around the wolf.

Anya rolled her eyes with a light snort at the girl’s overly difficult antics, she was convinced that Marie’s sleeping problems would get better sooner or later and the child truly needed to get used to sleep on her own.

Ontari had in the meantime managed to unlace one boot, but she was biting her lip quiet strongly, bending over like this pulled at her injured shoulder painfully.

Anya crouched down wordlessly in front of the nightblood girl when she noticed her silent struggle, swatting her hands away and taking over to unlace and pull off her boots for the girl. “Do you want to change into something different?” the general asked, getting up again.

Ontari looked indecisive for a moment, before she inclined her head with a frown. The shirt could use change and the tight leather trousers were dirty from their trek and would not be the most comfortable to sleep in.

“Come on then” Anya motioned the girl to stand up, her face open and free of any judgement. She stretched out her hand to unwind the sling binding Ontari’s injured arm to her torso, but the girl took a step back.

“I can do that myself” Ontari retorted, clearly uncomfortable with receiving help in undressing like that.

Anya rolled her eyes and a clear flash of impatience passed over her features “Do not be difficult now as well” she bit back, with a deep breath, trying to refrain from snapping at the nightblood. Her brown eyes shortly flitted over to Marie and although the child was lying in a way that her back faced towards them, it looked as if the girl was crying mutely, her whole frame shuddering slightly, while her face was pressed into Risha’s fur.

Ontari begrudgingly allowed the general to assist her in undressing and changing into more comfortable clean clothes after that, she was still relieved to be able to slip under her own furs immediately after.

Anya hovered in front of Marie’s bed indecisively for a moment, before she took another deep breath and bent down. She gently placed a hand on the girl’s shoulder which visibly startled Marie.

The girl’s grey eyes were red-rimmed and swimming in tears, when she peered over her shoulder at the general.

Anya sighed and the harshness instantly melted from her features, leaving them soft and kind. “There is no need for you to sleep alone” she amended in a gentle tone.

Marie sniffled audibly as she untangled herself from Risha. She had not bothered to actually dress into her sleeping wear and had slipped beneath the furs only in underwear.

“Dress and you can join me” Anya said to her charge with an encouraging smile and turned around to change out of her light armour as well.

Marie climbed into Anya’s bed only a moment after the general had laid down. Risha had watched her human with her head tilted to the side and made herself comfortable on the girl’s bed with a huff.

“Would have liked it better in Lexa’s quarters with her…” Marie mumbled, obviously still upset, as she cuddled up to Anya.

Anya put an arm around the girl and slight amusement coloured her tone “I am aware, Marie” she sighed “But it is not possible permanently.”

Marie nodded her head with a huff, cuddling closer to the woman and closing her eyes instantly when Anya let her fingers comb through her hair, lightly scratching at her scalp.

“Love you…” the girl mumbled sleepily.

Anya felt the girl drifting off soon as her frame became soft and heavy with her sleep. She shut her own eyes, hoping to fall asleep quickly as she doubted that Marie would remain asleep for too long anyway.

~ ~ ~

Lexa watched Gustus close the door to her quarters behind Marie with a heavy heart. She had not enjoyed having to watch the girl’s clear disappointment and being unable to sooth her efficiently. She frowned slightly when she noticed Clarke’s disparaging expression. “What is it?” she asked, a hint of defensiveness creeping into her tone.

“You should not have placed such a decision with Marie” Clarke told the brunette, barely looking up from her sketch book. She had started to do a sketch of how Marie looked now after she had finished with her own dinner and the sketch just needed to get a few finishing touches.

Lexa’s frown deepened and she contemplated the blonde’s words for a moment, while she reached up and started to undo her braids with practised fingers.

“Let me” Clarke offered, putting the sketch book down and retrieving a wooden brush from the bathroom quickly.

“I simply wanted Marie to know that she will always be welcome to sleep in my quarters if she wishes to” Lexa said, leaning back slightly. Her green eyes closed and contentment took up her features under the blonde’s care.

“I know and I am sure that Marie is aware as well” Clarke reassured immediately in a loving tone. It was still surprising to her to see just how well Lexa did with children, she had never expected the commander to possess such a gentleness after she had first encountered the mighty warlord. “But you basically placed the burden of choosing between you and Anya on her with the way you worded it”.

Lexa frowned again, her brows creasing together, before she pinched the bridge of her nose at realizing that Clarke was right in her assessment. “I had not meant to” she said with a huff.

Clarke’s lips turned into a smile at Lexa’s adorable antics. Right now, the woman could not have looked any more removed from the commander, her brows were creased and the hint of a pout rested on her full lips. “To prevent something like that from happening again, Anya and you will need to carefully discuss your course of upbringing for Marie” she suggested.

Lexa’s green eyes instantly shot open at Clarke’s words and disbelief was apparent in them “I am not her mother” she said offhandedly. Clarke had not been present during their discussion of Marie wanting to call them more than her firsts, so she wondered how the blonde could already know.

Clarke tilted her head slightly “You may not be by blood, but it is clear to everyone who is not turning a blind eye on purpose that the child regards both of you as her mother figures now” she assessed.

Lexa huffed under her breath, as doubts clouded her mind. Could she ever function as a good substitute mother for Marie? “She wants to call Anya and me her mother” she told Clarke in a soft tone, awe filtering into it at the prospect.

Clarke smiled brighter now and mischief glinted in her blue eyes “Well, congratulations are in order then” she laughed “You have just become a mother”.

Lexa scowled assuming that Clarke was purposefully laughing at her, probably thinking this a horrible idea.

“Hey...” Clarke exclaimed, bending down and placing a weird kiss onto Lexa’s plump lips from her upside down position “I had not meant to offend you” she immediately claimed “I already told you that you would make a wonderful mother”.

Lexa sighed “I am not so sure about that…” her voice had gotten grave as it trailed off.

Clarke shook her head at the young leader and placed the brush down, going around the couch and straddling Lexa’s legs, efficiently climbing into her lap.

Lexa’s green eyes twinkled and a smile pulled at the corners of her mouth, distracted from her doubts for now.

“Marie adores you and so do your nightbloods” Clarke argued in a soft tone, her blue eyes boring into Lexa’s.

A full smile now rested on Lexa’s lips and her expression had turned gentle as well as she rested her hands on the blonde’s hips, keeping her in place securely. “If you say so” she replied playfully, tilting her head upwards and placing a kiss on the corner of Clarke’s mouth.

“I do” Clarke nodded with a laugh “Marie would not love you in such a way if you were not. You are a natural with children”.

Lexa frowned slightly, she was unaccustomed with this particular phrase, but she could guess to its meaning easily enough. Her expression turned serious a moment later “I have never contemplated the possibility of having a family myself” she confessed.

Clarke’s expression turned rather sad. She always found it upsetting to hear just how many basic things Lexa regarded as impossible for herself simply because of the position she held. It was a cruel fate in Clarke’s opinion for such a gentle soul like Lexa to behold.

“I had not expected to live this long either…” Lexa added with a sigh. She had never in her wildest dreams entertained the idea of truly succeeding to form the coalition and see the Mountain fall as well during her life time.

Clarke lightly placed a hit against Lexa’s chest “Can you just not talk about your impending death like that!” she demanded with a slightly raised voice. She had come to understand just how indifferent Lexa regarded her own life, but it was painful for her to listen to the brunette talk about it nevertheless.

Lexa mockingly rubbed at the place where Clarke had just hit her “I apologize” she said in a light tone. They stared into each other’s eyes in silence for long moments.

“Do you ever wish that you had not become commander?” Clarke asked in a cautious tone. She had tried speaking about this with Lexa before, but the woman had not been very approachable then.

Lexa frowned slightly, a denial had been on the tip of her tongue quickly, but she had not given voice to it. “There have been a few occurrences” she admitted after a moment, melancholia flashed through her green eyes. Her expression turned lighter only a short moment later, it would not do to dwell on the past. “Today for example” she added as the corners of her lips turned downwards.

Clarke tilted her head slightly, an inquiring expression on her face. She gently placed her hands flatly on Lexa’s stomach, feeling her abs tensing beneath the thin fabric of the commander’s shirt.

“Anya can offer to acknowledge Marie as her own” Lexa explained “I cannot do the same, no matter if I wish to or not. The same as I cannot bond with you”. Sorrow flashed over her features minutely.

Clarke sighed and she looked deeply into Lexa’s green eyes “I am sure that Marie understands the boundaries of your station, just like I do” she tried to appease the young leader. “Not every bond has to be acknowledged by a ceremony for it to form. Marie regards you as a mother figure, ceremony or not” she added honestly, neither did she require a bonding ceremony to feel the deep connection with Lexa.

Although Lexa nodded, a contemplative expression remained on her features “I hope I will be able to change them someday”. She had so many plans and wishes she hoped to push through before the end of her reign, she highly doubted that all of them could come into fruition. Changing the rules of the conclave was just one of them.

Clarke nodded with a grave expression, she still regarded it as highly unfair for a society to demand loneliness from their leader. But she had every faith in Lexa that the brunette could reach everything that she set out to achieve. “I am sure you will” she assured the young leader, voice full of conviction.

“We should retire as well” Lexa said a moment later. She would try to find time tomorrow to discuss about Marie with Anya, although she did not have a clue as to what they should be discussing in detail.

Clarke nodded and climbed out of Lexa’s lap again, offering a hand to the woman to hoist her from the couch.

Lexa smiled slightly as she accepted Clarke’s hand, but Clarke still thought that Lexa looked preoccupied. She watched the young leader go through her nightly rituals before sliding under the furs and the faraway look had not left Lexa’s eyes even for a moment.

“What keeps you thinking so hard?” Clarke asked, her head pillowed by Lexa’s shoulder.

Lexa seemed slightly surprised that the blonde had picked up on her state of mind, before she gave voice to her thoughts “I do not have a clue on how to raise children”. A frown rested on her features and worry flitted through her green eyes.

Clarke’s brows knitted together in confusion, she found it hard to believe that the otherwise so self-assured woman could now be doubting herself like that. “What are you so afraid of?” she asked, keeping her tone very soft. She knew how touchy grounders were when it came to fear.

Lexa looked down at Clarke disparagingly and her tone was slightly clipped “I am not afraid”. She could not help herself for feeling affronted by Clarke’s words.

Clarke sighed again and conceded “Fine, not afraid then. But let’s just call it “worried””.

Lexa rolled her eyes at Clarke’s stubbornness “How should I be of any help in raising Marie, if I do not know the first things about child care?” she asked.

Clarke snorted under her breath “Seriously? You have had your hands in raising the girl since Anya was in the Mountain”.

Lexa winced slightly at the mention of the Mountain, the subject was still very delicate between them. She frowned “I have been her first then” she clarified.

Now it was Clarke’s turn to roll her eyes “I doubt that you will find much difference between the two. Marie just wants to call you more. This is a difference of a word and nothing more”.

Lexa nodded with a huff, clearly no finished with the matter yet.

“Anya has been a mentor to you and Tris” Clarke said. She knew that the commander would not sleep a single moment during the night if her thoughts kept her awake and by the tenseness of Lexa’s body it was apparent just how much this was occupying her thoughts. “You have been a first before, right?” she asked.

Lexa frowned, but she nodded. “Yes, but not even for a year. I have never been close to the boy either. It was comparable to the nightbloods”.

Clarke sighed under her breath. Why could the woman not understand that she already had efficiently been raising Marie together with Anya for months? She could fathom to some degree that the change in title was marking an important point in their relationship, but she highly doubted that the daily routine would change much for either of them.

“Lexa” she started, her voice had turned slightly desperate for the other woman to understand her point “You and Anya have been close to the girl for months now. This is truly just a change of how she calls you. She might wish to spend a little more time with you, if it is possibly, but I doubt much else would change”.

“I still do not know much about child care…” Lexa grumbled, obviously unwilling to just concede now.

Clarke shook her head, a laugh bubbling from her lips “You have instinctively treated her in a gentle caring fashion, whenever I have seen you together before. She is ten and not ten months old, you will not need special skills”.

“Fine…” Lexa finally conceded and bend down to kiss Clarke before the woman could say anything else. The kiss stayed gentle and loving, both of them were feeling tired and Lexa still thought it likely that Marie would be seeking her out later, so she did not wish to start anything with Clarke now at the off-chance that Marie could be interrupting them.

Clarke reciprocated Lexa’s kisses lazily, she enjoyed the closeness to the other woman and would be quite happy to lounge in the bed with her for eternity, not wishing for anything else. She drifted off with a smile on her features and her arms slung around Lexa’s frame possessively. Clarke knew that it was likely for Marie to show up in their rooms some time during the night and although she did not have anything against the child seeking comfort from Lexa, she would be a hypocrite if she claimed not to like to have Lexa to herself in their bed better.

 

 

Chapter 199

Anya had found it difficult to sleep this night. The girl’s plea to be more than her second still ringing loudly in her ears. Although she basically had already been the girl’s primary attachment figure since taking her on as her second, this was still different. Anya did not yet know how she would be reacting when Marie truly choose to address her in such a fashion. The concept made her stomach clench with nervous anticipation. She huffed under her breath in slight irritation. She had already treated the girl much differently than she ever had done with Lexa and Tris. She would just continue to do as she had done until now and hope that it would suffice.

If she thought back to the day that she had met the girl now, a shiver ran down her arms raising goose bumps in its path. If she had given into Indra’s instant decision to kill the child without giving her even the slightest chance at survival, her whole life would be changed now. Would she even still be alive? Or would she remain in the outskirt of Trikru territory? Tris might still be alive then and although she regretted the way that her second had died and her loss still cut deeply, Anya would not change how she had decided.

The girl moved slightly in her arms and Anya tightened them around her frame, bending over slightly and placing a kiss to the crown of her head. She closed her eyes and forced her thoughts to calm, drifting off to sleep soon after. 

Anya woke again with a tired groan. It was still dark outside and there was not even a hint of sunrise. Marie had already woken her three times before. The child was noticeably trembling in her arms and she seemed wide awake.

Her grey eyes stared up at Marie tearfully. Cold sweat glistened on her brow and her features were pale, clearly still shaken by the nightmare which had disturbed her sleep.

Anya tightened her arms around the girl, caressing her back and trying to sooth her back into oblivion. It had worked rather well the three previous times during the night. But somehow Marie did not seem to wish to settle again, the girl was utterly restless in her arms and kept on wiggling.

Anya yawned deeply “You wish to see Lexa, don’t you?” she asked her charge in a tired tone.

Marie nodded with a tearful expression and although Anya sighed, she loosened her arms around the child’s frame and held up the furs for Marie to slip out of the bed.

“Sorry…” Marie mumbled with a slight sniffle as she climbed from the bed.

Anya stopped the girl by grasping onto one of her wrists “Don’t be” she reassured her charge in a low tone.

Ontari had changed her sleeping position slightly, so Anya assumed that the nightblood had probably been woken as well, but she did not seem to plan to acknowledge that.

“I am sure you can find the way yourself” Anya said as she let go of Marie’s wrist.

Marie nodded, wiping at her cheeks with the other hand. She was slightly embarrassed by the whole situation, but she left their shared quarters barefoot only a moment later.

 Marie walked through the halls, still sniffling slightly and she blushed when she stood in front of Gustus and Ryder, who stood guard at the entrance to the commander’s quarters.

Gustus did not even try to really speak with the girl. It was obvious that she had cried and if Anya had failed in calming her down, he did not need to give it a try. So, he gave the girl an encouraging smile and opened the doors to the commander’s quarters for her mutely. Ryder had gotten used to seeing Marie enter and leave the rooms as she pleased at all hours of the day, so he did not show any outward reaction as well.

Marie tiptoed into the room carefully. She was pretty certain that Lexa and Clarke would have already been sleeping and she did not wish to wake Clarke.

Lexa was roused from her light sleep immediately when the door was opened, but she did not move just yet and strained her ears. She could hear faint breathing and someone tiptoeing towards the bed. The steps sounded light and although muffled by the rugs covering her floor, Lexa was certain that it was Marie tiptoeing around barefoot. When Marie seemed to hesitate and the steps stopped, the child’s breathing quickened slightly. Before her charge could work herself into a fit of panic, Lexa soundlessly slipped from the bed and walked over to Marie.

Lexa could only make out the outline of Marie’s body in the dim light. Most of the candles had burned down and the fire had died down as well. She remembered that Anya had been careful to light new candles the night before, which burned through the whole night, keeping the room slightly more illuminated.

“I will light a few more candles” Lexa addressed the girl in a whisper, putting a hand onto her shoulder for a moment, until Marie visibly nodded in acknowledgment.

Although Lexa had given the girl a slight nudge in the direction of the bed, Marie remained rooted to the spot until Lexa returned to her side. “Lie down” Lexa urged the child in a gentle tone, barely above a whisper. Clarke was still sleeping peacefully and she would prefer not to wake the healer.

Marie frowned up at Lexa, confused that the woman seemed to want her to slip into the middle of the bed. She felt slightly uncomfortable with the concept, but relented when the woman gave her another mute nudge.

Although she had stopped crying on the way here, she still wiped at her cheeks self-consciously.

Lexa lied down beside Marie, feeling the girl’s body tense and stiff and her breathing slightly elated. Slowly and carefully, she pulled the child closer to herself and waited to feel some of the tension drain from her frame. Marie had turned her back to Clarke and now placed her head into the crook of Lexa’s neck as if hiding from the world around her.

The commander did not attempt to ask the girl what had woken her in the first place. Her crying had ceased and the girl had not said a single word, so she obviously did not wish to talk just yet. She pressed a kiss on top of the girl’s head, whispering the order to sleep to her and lowly humming the melody of the lullaby under her breath until Marie drifted off again in her arms.

The rest of the night passed easier than Lexa had anticipated originally. Marie slept through most of it undisturbed and when the child had started to wiggle around in her arms, Lexa had been able to sooth her back to sleep with a few hushed words and gentle caresses.

Clarke frowned when she woke and found the bed next to her empty and cold. Sunlight already flooded in through the windows and she stretched leisurely, confused that she had obviously slept in. She looked around the room, expecting to find Lexa engrossed in her morning routine. The scene which her eyes fell on to, made her pause.

Lexa was sitting on a low stool and Marie stood behind her. The child’s expression was one of utter concentration as she tried to tame the commander’s brown locks into their customary braids. Lexa seemed relaxed and her eyes were closed. Clarke would have assumed her to be mediating, but the commander asked in a calm tone “Who is the leader of the Shallow Valley clan?”

Marie scowled visibly at the question and her hands paused their movement.

“Continue, Marie” Lexa reprimanded the child lightly, her eyes still closed “You can think and speak, while braiding”.

Marie’s scowl only deepened, before her look of concentration intensified. Clarke had never heard the name, the girl uttered as a reply. But it must have been the correct answer, as Lexa lightly inclined her head and asked another question.

The scene looked so weirdly mundane that Clarke could not help the snort escaping past her lips.

Lexa’s eyes opened immediately at the sound and a slight smile played around the corners of her mouth. Marie looked like a startled deer and the child visibly seemed unsure on what to do now.

Clarke’s own smile froze at the girl’s reaction and she sighed under her breath. She had not meant to startle the girl and surely not to make her feel uncomfortable.

“Continue” Lexa addressed Marie in a soft tone, calling the child out of her slightly startled haze. The girl sprung into action again immediately with a sheepish expression.

Clarke smiled slightly at her, but the girl averted her eyes and focused completely on Lexa’s hair. Clarke sighed again and shook her head lightly. “Good morning” she said to Lexa and added with a slight grumble “You could have woken me”.

Lexa raised a brow in reaction and amusement danced through her green eyes “It is certainly not my fault that you sleep like a hibernating bear”.

Clarke looked affronted slightly and opened her mouth to retort something, when she heard a shy giggle bubble from Marie’s mouth in reaction to their light banter. She changed her retort in the last second “Is that so?” she inquired, mock affront colouring her tone.

Marie’s giggling got slightly louder and the child surprised both of them by piping in “You did not hear me come in last night”.

Clarke shortly bandied a look with Lexa and answered her smile with one of her own. She would gladly accept any kind of progress with Marie. It would not do for their relationship to remain this strained.

“I did not, no” Clarke agreed “You must have become really good at sneaking around” she acknowledged in a friendly tone.

Marie’s brows furrowed visibly and it was obvious that the girl did not know how to react to such a statement.

“Lexa likes to compare me to pauna” Clarke added with a teasing tone, her blue eyes twinkling.

Marie looked at Clarke with a slightly tilted head for the fraction of a second, before the girl smiled again. “Anya said “I still sound like a baby pauna”.”

Clarke was saved from giving an answer by Alira’s arrival, carrying in breakfast. The handmaid seemed worried and her smile had a forced quality to it.

“I see you have taken over some of my work” the woman said to Marie in a light tone.

Marie paused in her movements, detecting that something seemed off in her tone.

“What has happened?” Lexa asked, urgency in her voice and her expression had lost all its softness instantly.

“A messenger has arrived a few moments ago. He was sent by the warriors who acted as reinforcement for those following the conclave” Alira said and her expression already told all of them that the message had not contained good news. “They have found more evidence of a struggle. They are searching for the rest of the conclave, but have not found them yet”.

Lexa furrowed her brow, worry rising in her mind. She had been convinced that she had sent more than enough warriors to protect the nightbloods. If all six of them would be lost, in addition to Titus, it would be a heavy blow. It would leave Ontari and Aden as the only two old enough to compete in a conclave in the immediate future.

“Three more units are to follow them” she ordered in a brisk tone “The conclave must be located at all costs”.

The handmaid nodded her acknowledgment and hurried out of the room.

When Lexa stood from the stool, Marie’s almost shy voice stopped her “I was not finished” the girl said lowly.

Lexa waved her off and felt out the braids which Marie had finished. She quickly put the finishing touches to her hair herself. She acknowledged Marie’s efforts with a nod and motioned the girl to start eating breakfast by pushing the tea to settle her stomach into her direction.

Marie fiddled with the cup, her brows still creased “Do you think the others were attacked as well?” she asked hesitantly.

Lexa had sat down at the table and was obviously hurrying along her own breakfast, she inclined her head in between a few bites “It is a possibility” she answered in a heavy tone.

Clarke returned from the bathroom, dressed for the day and gently squeezed Lexa’s shoulders, hoping to ease the leader’s worries for a moment. She pressed a soft kiss to her lips when Lexa paused eating for a moment.

Lexa’s expression turned tender minutely “I need to start the meetings as soon as possible” she sighed. With Titus gone from Polis, she had more responsibilities again and she found the substitutions for Titus highly lacking. Lexa had not been aware of just how much the flamekeeper already organised without her input or she had rather taken this for granted.

Marie was still in the process of drinking her tea and her gaze fell onto Clarke’s sketch book which was still lying opened on the table. The girl turned the book to herself, curiosity appearing on her face. A frown settled on her features at finding herself the theme of the sketch.

Clarke had drawn her sitting on the couch, staring into the flames in the firepit preoccupied. Marie did not like at all how she was portrayed there. The memory of the sketches Lexa had shown her, which Clarke had done for the commander and Anya after she had been brought to queen Nia, still fresh in her mind. The old sketches contrasted starkly with the image which had been painted in this one.

“Do I really look like this?” she asked, directing the question at both Lexa and Clarke.

Alarm shortly flashed over Clarke’s features at noticing her sketch book in the girl’s hands. The book was already filled halfway with sketches. Some of them showed little scenes from Polis, Lexa in different situations and quiet a few from Marie. But the book also contained some sketches of Clarke and Lexa together in rather explicit ways and she doubted the young girl would enjoy seeing them. In addition, the book also held a few sketches of the first days after Marie had been brought back into Polis.

With the way Marie found her most recent sketch of her upsetting, as the girl’s grey eyes clearly conveyed, Clarke was sure that seeing herself back then would upset her even more.

“What don’t you like about it?” Lexa inquired softly, pausing in her eating yet again. She kept close watch on the girl’s facial expression and it confused her how intently Marie was staring down at the sketch in her hands. Lexa had seen it the evening before and she had found it well done and picturing the girl perfectly.

Marie grimaced and she tilted her head, her grey eyes staring down sadly at the harsh lines forming her features “I don’t want to look like that…” she mumbled, a whine in her tone.

Clarke had drawn from her memory alone as she had watched one of the strained visits to the commander’s quarters before Marie had regained her memories. The girl’s features still portrayed the distrust and discomfort she had radiated the whole time. “It shows you before you regained your memories” she clarified in a kind tone.

Marie looked up, brows still creased “I know” she acknowledged. She pushed the book away from herself with a huff and emptied the cup in one go, grimacing at the bitter taste. She crossed her arms over her chest firmly and glared the book.

Lexa stood from her chair and crouched down in front of Marie, turning the girl to face her by her shoulders and waiting until the child’s grey eyes connected with her. She was surprised to note angry tears glittering in them. She gently wiped them away, when the first fell from the girl’s lashes down her cheeks.

“What upsets you so much about the sketch, little star?” Lexa asked in a soft but demanding tone. She had noticed some days ago that calling the girl by her nickname seemed to keep the child much calmer and there was no harm in using it more often in the privacy of her quarters.

Marie frowned at Lexa and her voice was tinted with displeasure “I don’t look like that” she claimed agitated.

“Like what?” Lexa reworded her question. She could not try to ease the girl’s worry if she did not understand it.

“So hard…” Marie exclaimed with another huff.

Lexa sighed under her breath. She could fathom now what Marie meant, but she would not be lying to the girl. Her face had changed considerably and the softness had all but been erased from it by Nia. It surprised her slightly that Marie had not yet realized that herself, or maybe she had but rather choose to push it from her mind.

“I am afraid, you indeed do” Lexa told her charge in a gentle tone, keeping hold of her shoulders before Marie could move away as denial flashed over her features. “What you have suffered through was bound to show in a physical change as well, Marie” the commander tried to reason with the girl softly “You have begun to change again already” she added and reached out towards the sketch book.

Clarke’s brows furrowed and she opened her mouth to tell Lexa to put it down again. She doubted showing Marie how she had looked at her return would do any good, but Lexa was obviously convinced otherwise and silenced her with a quick shake of her head.

The commander determinedly leaved through the book, holding it in a way that Marie could not really look into it at the moment.

The girl frowned in confusion at Lexa and impatience flashed through her grey eyes.

Lexa squeezed her shoulder once and turned the book around when she had found one of the sketches she had been searching for. Clarke had done it on the same day as Marie’s return and it showed the girl standing in the cell in the dungeons, glaring through the bars distrustfully, still dressed in the clothes of Ice Nation.

Marie sucked in a harsh breath when she inspected the sketch and her brows furrowed even more. It somehow shocked her to look at the picture of herself. She had rarely seen a reflection of herself while she had been with the queen and her looks had not been important in any way. The angry snarl etched into the features of her pictured self and the dangerous glint in her eyes, did not sit right with her. If she did not know that the picture showed herself, she would not have recognized the likelihood as well.

It worried Lexa deeply that the girl seemed to be shocked into speechlessness and she gently pried the book from her fingers, flipping the page back to Clarke’s latest sketch and offering it once again to Marie.

“See, you have already changed a lot” Lexa tried to address Marie in a calm tone.

Marie’s grey eyes flicked to the page again and after long moments she looked up again, nodding once and swallowing past the lump lodged into her throat.

“You are fiercer and stronger now and your looks reflect those changes” Lexa agreed “But you are not the innocent girl any longer that fell from the stars, Marie, but nonetheless any less beautiful”. Her tone was honest and her green eyes intent.

Marie looked deeply into Lexa’s eyes for a moment, obviously searching for any hint of dishonesty and the girl flung her arms around Lexa’s neck shortly after, enveloping the commander strongly.

Clarke shook her head slightly, wondering just how Lexa did those things. The commander seemed to instinctively know the just correct way to handle situations like this with Marie. She suppressed a snort at the thought of Lexa truly doubting her skills in raising Marie.

 

 

Chapter 200

Ontari woke the next morning with a slightly pained hiss. She had rolled over during her sleep and her whole weight had rested on her injured shoulder, the whole limb tingled uncomfortably and currents of pain shot threw the arm as she slowly sat up.

When she looked over at Marie’s bed, it did not come as a real surprise that the bed was empty. She had still been awake when Marie had joined Anya in hers after all. But Anya’s bed was empty as well. Ontari frowned, wondering where the general could be and why she had not woken up before. The sun seemed to have risen some time ago already and it did not seem like the general to let her sleep in.

Sounds of sloshing water came from the bathroom a moment later, so Ontari assumed that Anya and Marie were inside of the small room.

With another hiss, Ontari tried to roll her injured shoulder slightly, but found that she was unable to move it much. She had clearly underestimated the severity of the injury and she hoped that the general would hold true to her word and let her rest from physical training for at least a few days. She was positive that she could fight and train with the other arm, if she was forced to. But she was also sure that doing so would be highly painful and although her tolerance for pain was very high, she would prefer to rest of course.

Ontari remained sitting on the bed, waiting patiently for the general or Marie to step out of the bathroom. After her experience from the previous evening, she was aware that she would require some assistance in changing her clothing. She had no intentions of ripping open the stitches and having to have them done a third time, if she could help it.

In her mind, Ontari suddenly compared the care the general was bestowing upon her now and how Nia and the members of the royal guard in Azgeda had treated her. The differences could not have been much greater. Although she would not say that the general was treating her in any way like she was treating Marie, she was still a whole world more caring towards her than she had ever experienced ever before.

“Good, you are up” Anya’s voice pulled Ontari from her thoughts.

The general had heard what she assumed to be a pained groan and had hurried along in the bathroom. She had no idea how the nightblood had slept through the maids bringing in water for a bath. Her hair was still dripping with water and she had only slung a towel around her body, wanting to check first that the girl was alright.

Ontari blinked once at the woman, surprised to see her in such a state of undress. She had never seen Nia like this, she had always been called into her quarters after the woman had already dressed or was directly asked into her throne room.

“Do you wish to bath?” Anya asked, ignoring the girl’s missing reaction to her appearance. She did not think it necessary to only see Ontari while she was in the station of the general. They would undoubtedly be spending a lot of time with each other and showing herself like that, vulnerable and natural, was a way of showing her trust to the nightblood girl. She was sure that Ontari would realize it as such sooner or later as well.

A conflict seemed to wash over Ontari’s features. On the one hand the girl would have truly enjoyed the opportunity to take a warm bath and truly wash off the results of their trek from her skin, but on the other hand she was well aware that she would definitely require assistance in undressing completely and dressing again, possibly even in bathing itself.

Anya sighed under her breath. She had become better at reading the little cues Ontari still gave away in her expression, making it easy to spot her inner conflict. She could understand the girl’s hesitancy to agree to a bath if she needed help in actually taking it. But she would not have asked, if she had not meant the offer seriously. “It is your decision, if you want to take a bath or not” Anya said into the silence that had settled between them, only interrupted by the occasional drop of water dripping from her hair onto the stone floor beneath her feet.

Ontari’s lips thinned for a moment, before she inclined her head, taking a deep breath. The general had already seen her naked before, inspecting her body for injuries after training, but somehow this felt entirely different now.

Anya choose not say anything and simply turned around, going back into the bathroom and leaving the door open behind herself for Ontari to follow her. The general quickly dried off her hair at least a little, annoyed by the water still dripping from them.

Ontari shuffled her feet in place awkwardly, waiting for the woman to help her undress, second-guessing her decision to take her up on the offer at all. She did not necessarily need a bath today, she could do without one for the next few days until she could move more comfortably for sure.

Anya did not give the nightblood a chance to back off now and mutely motioned her to turn around, helping her to take off the shirt first. With careful fingers Anya removed the bandage around the wounded area as well, inspecting the wound for any sign of swelling as she did so. She was satisfied to find no traces of any seepage, so she doubted that the wound was festering with an infection at the moment. She hesitated only for a little moment before she reached out and undid the girl’s breast band as well.

“The wound looks dry and not infected” Anya relayed to Ontari, already bending down slightly and sliding the girl’s trouser and underwear down her legs in one go.

She offered a hand to the girl’s uninjured arm for balance, when Ontari quickly stepped over to the tub and climbed over the high ledge.

Anya noted that a few large bruises were additionally scattered over the girl’s body, so the injury to her shoulder had not been the only hit she had taken in the fight against the bandits.

Ontari sank into the warm water with a barely concealed sigh of contentment, the water was still warm and she felt her muscles relax immediately.

A slight smirk tugged at Anya’s lips as she turned from the tub “Do not lean back, the wound should remain dry” she ordered and after checking that Ontari was heeding her order, she dried the rest of her body off and shortly returned into the main room to dress again.

Ontari did not understand why she felt slightly more comfortable with the general when the woman returned, dressed in her customary light armour, only her hair still damp and undone.

“Lean back, but don’t get in any deeper” Anya ordered and took up a bar of soap, intent to wash the girl’s dark hair. She shook her head slightly; the position would not do to keep the wound dry. She pushed at the girl’s shoulder mutely and waited until Ontari was leaning forward and started with wetting her hair, careful not to let too much water run down the girl’s back in the process.

Ontari let herself be handled by Anya in silence. She knew that the general could have made this whole situation much more awkward and painful as well. She was grateful that the woman kept silent, so she did not have to think of anything to say either.

Ontari was not truly surprised by the way Anya efficiently and quickly helped her to bath, she was still grateful that the woman’s touches were careful and the woman seemed to keep close watch of her back, not willing to wet the wounded area.

Ontari had been able to wash most of her body herself without assistance and after Anya had finished with her hair, she helped the nightblood back out of the bathing tub.

Mutely the general proceeded in drying off Ontari’s hair and body, careful not to touch the fresh suture on her shoulder at all. She left the bathroom with quick strides, collecting fresh clothes for the girl and helped her dress afterwards.

Ontari breathed a sigh of relieve after the Trikru woman had wound the breast band around her chest and told her to wait, calling for a healer to apply a new bandage on her shoulder. She watched the woman leave the rooms with a slight frown, if the general had intended to call for a healer all along, she was sure that the healer could have offered the very same assistance as well. Internally, Ontari was grateful Anya had chosen to help her herself instead of delegating the task.

Ontari looked up at the sound of footsteps and was surprised to be faced with Wanheda herself. In the background Ontari could hear Marie’s voice telling something to the general.

“Turn around” Clarke ordered in a calm tone, slight amusement dancing through her blue eyes at the dumbfounded look in Ontari’s eyes. She gently inspected the wound, exerting slight pressure on the surrounding tissue to test for swelling. “No signs of an infection” Clarke assessed and applied a poultice to aid with the healing, before bandaging the area again.

Anya had handed a shirt to her and Clarke mutely held it up for Ontari, helping her manoeuvre her injured arm into the sleeve before she busied herself with constructing another sling and efficiently binding her injured arm to the girl’s upper body. “All done” she proclaimed with a slight smile, as she stored her equipment again.

Ontari inclined her head and returned to the main room. Clarke watched the girl leave with a slight huff, although she was well aware that voicing their gratitude was highly uncommon for grounders, she still had not grown accustomed to this lack of obvious gratitude.

Although Marie smiled kindly at Ontari in greeting, the nightblood immediately spotted how the other girl’s eyes looked red-rimmed and puffy, as if she had been crying not too long ago. She had a plate in front of her containing the rest of her breakfast and it looked as if the girl had interrupted her breakfast with the commander to come over.

“So, the rest of the conclave has not been located yet?” Ontari heard Anya ask Marie, as she stepped into the room.

“No” Marie shook her head, a slight frown on her features “Lexa left to organize more troops to look for them” she added after a moment.

Anya inclined her head and sat down opposite of the girl, beginning her own breakfast as well.

“I will go and join the healers” Clarke said as a farewell and left.

Marie pushed the food around on her plate, appetite not really existent. She could not stop thinking about Clarke’s sketches and although she did believe Lexa’s words, her mind would not quite down.

“Anya?” she called for the woman’s attention, expression troubled and still trying to sort through her thoughts.

Anya looked up at the girl expectantly “What?” she asked when the girl did not say anything more.

“Do you think I changed for the worse?” Marie wanted to know, grey eyes stormy.

Ontari frowned at the out of the blue question. But Anya did seem to understand what Marie was referring to.

Anya’s expression turned grave and she felt a painful tug at her heart at the child’s question. “You have not” she assured the girl in simply words, but with a decisive tone.

Marie nodded, but it was obvious that she was not finished with the matter at all, she still looked troubled.

“What has brought this about?” Anya asked, wondering if Lexa might have implied something which had upset Marie like this. But the commander was usually very considerate in her wording, so she highly doubted it.

Marie sighed once, huffing out a frustrated puff of air, clearly irritated with herself, before she enumerated what had happened in the morning.

Anya listened patiently to the girl’s words although she found it hard to fathom what had been this upsetting to Marie in the situation. She was still thinking of what to say, when surprisingly Ontari beat her to it.

“Marie, it does not matter what you look like” Ontari assured the girl strongly. She could understand to a certain degree why acknowledging her apparent changes might be upsetting for the younger girl. She herself had been shell shocked as she had seen Marie for the first time in Nia’s fortress. Not much had been left of the child she had come to form a friendship with in Polis.

Marie frowned, but begrudgingly inclined her head in agreement. She knew theoretically that it did not matter at all what she looked like. But in her mind the changes were purely associated with the queen and she had not had any say in them. She had already forcefully removed the queen’s kill marks from her body, so she could not think of anything else that she could change to distinct herself from who the queen had forced her to become. She could not forget Kato’s distrust, neither the reaction of the warriors from the Plain Rider caravan.

She remembered that Lexa and Anya were still carrying her braids with them, but that did not feel right to her either. “Can we burn my braids?” she asked, changing the subject slightly “Together with the sketches Clarke made?” she added after a beat of silence.

Anya had already nodded to the first part of the child’s question, but she paused at the last part. “Surely you do not mean all of them?” she checked with a creased brow. In all honesty, she would be against burning all of them. Clarke had really done a great job at picturing a few scenes before Marie had been brought to Nia.

Marie shook her head “No, but the ones after my return” she explained vehemently.

Anya’s expression turned cautious, she could guess that this was still more about Marie having a problem with how she looked like now, than the actual sketches. She could agree on destroying the ones Clarke did of the first days since the girl’s return, but those as well had some value to them.

She stood from her chair and crouched down in front of the child. Marie usually did better with physical contact when she was upset. She put her hands on the girl’s shoulders and waited until she looked at her “Marie, there is nothing wrong with your looks. Your features have turned sharper, but they will certainly change again with time, just like you will” Anya tried to appease the girl.

Marie nodded, her lower lip already trembling suspiciously, as if she was on the verge of breaking out in tears again.

Anya simply pulled the girl into her arms, enveloping her strongly. With the way Marie clung to her, it was obvious that the girl did not intent to let go any time soon, so Anya pulled herself up and sat down, pulling Marie to sit in her lap.

Ontari watched the scene with a frown. She could not truly understand why Marie seemed to depend so much on close physical contact. The concept was still alien to her and she could not help but wonder how different she could be, if she had not been brought to Nia at such an early age. She continued with her breakfast in silence.

Anya mutely held the girl in her arms, while finishing her own breakfast. She doubted there would be any use in trying to urge Marie to eat some more. She granted the child a few moments of silence and letting her draw calmness from her embrace.

Marie willingly let go of Anya and stood back up, when the general gave her a light nudge after she had finished with her breakfast. Marie felt considerably calmer now and she was grateful that Anya had simply let her be.

“Are we going to train now?” Marie asked in an eager tone, no signs left in her features that she had been upset earlier at all.

Anya raised a brow at the girl’s obvious change of mood, still not accustomed to her sudden mood swings. She inclined her head in mute agreement she had not worked with her unit for several days now.

Ontari frowned, she had been sure that the general would keep her word and not have her train for a few days at least. Why would the woman go through all of the trouble and assist her in bathing and keeping the arm still, if she now was planning to let her train?

Anya ignored the nightblood’s visible displeasure and she rolled her eyes at the girl’s pride, keeping her from asking for help to dress into a warmer cloak. She did stop the stubborn girl from trying to get on her armour though, telling her to leave it there.

Ontari’s frown deepened, but she still kept her mouth shut, following the general mutely and visibly confused. She tried keeping the cloak around her frame with her uninjured arm awkwardly.

Anya rolled her eyes at the nightblood’s antics, but she had to stop Marie from looking for her own armour as well.

“You have both been told not to train for a few days” she chided both girls equally. While Ontari seemed visibly relieved, Marie scowled.

“I am fine” the girl claimed, crossing her arms over her chest.

“You will not train until Clarke deems you healthy enough” Anya retorted, glaring down lightly at the child and motioning both towards the elevator.

Marie’s scowl deepened “I can go and ask her” she said petulantly.

“Certainly not” Anya retorted, outwardly wearing a calm expression, but her patience was waning quickly. The child needed to learn not to argue so much with them as soon as possible. It was good that Marie obviously felt more comfortable again, but she needed to mind her tongue in public.

“I feel fine” Marie repeated, grey eyes glittering angrily “So, why not?” her voice rose.

“Marie” Anya’s tone got hard and her brown eyes carried a warning.

Ontari shook her head slightly, wondering why Marie choose to test the general now.

“Fine…” Marie huffed, crossing her arms over her chest and glaring at the wall of the elevator.

Anya sighed out a deep huff of air, still glaring at Marie and tapping her foot impatiently until the girl looked in her direction again.

The moment Marie realized that she had overstepped, was easy to identify. The girl’s posture changed immediately and the anger drained from her face, leaving behind an even slightly fearful expression, biting at her lips nervously.

Anya sighed again and kept her tone calm “You are both going to watch and you are both going to learn something from it” she directed at both of them equally.

Marie was quick to nod eagerly, while Ontari only inclined her head once in silent acknowledgment.

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

Chapter 21: Chapter 201 - 210

Chapter Text

Chapter 201

Anya’s gaze kept on turning towards Ontari and Marie. She had left both girls on the edge of the training field with the explicit order to watch the ongoing sparring matches. While Ontari’s dark eyes stayed hefted on the ring of fighters, engaged in their training, Marie’s attention switched quickly.

Anya had heard the blonde girl start to chat with Ontari as soon as she had turned her back to them and addressed the warriors of her unit.

Her unit now consisted of twenty-eight warriors, mixed from most of the different clans of the coalition, beside Skykru and Ice Nation that was. One woman and two men from the Plain Riders, three women and one man from the Glowing Forest, a pair of female twins from the Broadleaf Clan, one man from the Shallow Valley Clan, two men from the Rock Line Clan, two women and one man from the Blue Cliff Clan, two men and a woman from the Desert Clan, two men from Delphi, three men from the Lake People, two men and four women from Trikru. Anya had known the members from Trikru before, two came from TonDC and she had already fought with them. Anya had expected that the different origin of the warriors would make it less likely for them to truly fight together as a unit, but she was positively surprised by their progress.

She was engaged herself in a sparring match with the twins from the Broadleaf Clan. Both of them were shorter in their stature, but slightly burlier. They had a unique way of fighting and fought best if they had each other’s backs. Anya had never before been faced with a pair of opponents being so in sync with each other.

She could feel sweat already running down the sides of her face and slicking her shirt to her body beneath the armour, but Anya had no intention of stopping.

From the corner of her eyes, Anya still kept watch over Ontari and Marie. The nightblood still obediently watched the matches with intent eyes, but Marie seemed to have lost focus completely.

Ontari rolled her eyes at the younger girl. The order to watch the sparring matches had been simple and although she had to agree internally that simply watching was not the most interesting, she would still heed the general’s orders.

“You did what?” she asked, voice tinted with disbelief. Ontari had only loosely listened to Marie’s words and she was not sure that she had got the child’s last words correctly.

Marie paused, her eyes only focused on Ontari now. “Are you even listening?” she asked with a raised brow.

Ontari huffed and rolled her eyes at the younger girl “We are supposed to watch, not talk” she retorted stiffly.

Marie sighed and shook her head “Fine” she said and closed her mouth. Her gaze turned back to the cycle of fighters. She wanted to participate and not simply watch, watching was boring. She tapped her foot in boredom, fiddling around with a few small pebbles lying around her feet.

“Can you stop that?” Ontari asked after a moment, the girl’s fiddling was distracting her attention and she was getting annoyed.

Marie narrowed her eyes at the nightblood, huffing in annoyance and hugging her knees to her chest, a pout forming on her lips.

“Fine” Ontari said after a moment, when it looked like Marie would likely explode with agitation in the next moments “Tell me what you wanted” she appeased the girl.

Ontari rolled her eyes when Marie kept silent and just looked in the other direction. But two could play this game and she knew that Marie had way less patience than she had, so Ontari leaned back slightly and turned her attention back to the warriors. She had to admit that the two women from the Broadleaf Clan truly knew how to fight, the general had to work hard to keep her guard up against them.

A slight smirk tugged at Ontari’s lips when Marie began talking again only short moments later, but it froze completely, when her mind caught what the blonde had just said. She blinked at the younger girl, unable to process Marie’s words.

“Can you repeat that?” she asked, voice chocked slightly and dark eyes widened in disbelief.

Marie rolled her eyes and she seemed to speak slower for Ontari’s sake “I had asked Lexa to show me what it would feel like if I share myself with someone willingly” she said, voice low, probably aware that no one else was supposed to hear such talk.

Ontari’s brows creased together. The images such a request called forth in her mind, let her stomach clench and she quickly shook her head, trying to clear such thoughts forcefully from her mind.

“She declined” Marie added when she noticed the horror flashing over Ontari’s features. She did not know if she should feel affronted on Lexa’s behalf because the nightblood seemed to think her capable of something like that. Marie had known that asking her had been wrong, the very moment the words had left her mouth. But she still was convinced that she would feel better if she had better memories to replace the ones the queen had edged onto her soul forever.

She could understand that Lexa had declined though. The woman was with Clarke now and it would have probably been absolutely awkward, she regarded her as a sort of mother after all.

Her grey eyes flicked to Ontari again. The girl was much closer to her in age than Lexa was and she trusted her.

“But you could” she said, following the thoughts rushing through her mind.

Ontari gasped, eyes widening even more and turning her attention completely to Marie now. “You want me to sleep with you?” she asked, a slight shriek turning her tone higher.

“Why not?” Marie retorted easily. When Ontari’s features remained filled with disbelief, Marie began to reason with her “I trust you and I like you, so why not you?”

“Why not?” Ontari echoed incredulously. She found it hard to think straight right now. Internally she was wondering if Marie was mocking her, but her grey eyes seemed too honest for that and such a jab would truly be out of character for the girl. She was torn between standing and leaving the girl, to get the opportunity to think without her grey eyes looking at her like that and snapping at the blonde to cease this nonsense.

“I want better memories…” Marie added, voice low and laced with sadness now, her shoulders sagged. She had stopped to look at Ontari and was fiddling with a strap on her coat.

Ontari felt a deep flash of sympathy for the younger girl and her mind calmed slightly, reassured now that the girl was not trying to mock her somehow with her absurd plea. She watched the younger girl in silence for a few moments, a lump formed in her throat and she swallowed heavily past it. “I can understand that” she assured Marie in a soft tone “But this is not the way to go about it, Marie. You should heal and grow before you seek out someone again”.

Marie huffed, her grey eyes suspiciously shining wet, but she nodded “Lexa reasoned something similar” she told the nightblood in a resigned tone.

“It has to be true if the commander said so” Ontari said, the hint of a tease colouring her tone, trying to lighten the younger girl’s mood.

She was rewarded with a watery giggle and Marie nodded again, straightening herself and the girl gulped when her eyes fell on Anya again, only a moment later.

The general was on her way towards them and judging from her facial expression, the woman was less than pleased about her lack of attention to the training.

“Sorry” Marie immediately muttered ruefully, eyes cast to the ground, when Anya stood in front of them.

The general was visibly dishevelled, hair out of order, a graze above her eyebrow. Sweat and dirt had intermingled on her skin, giving her a grimy complexion. Her brown eyes were narrowed at both of the girls, but focused more on Marie.

“Talia!” she suddenly exclaimed loudly without turning back and Marie gave a slight startled jump at the general’s raised voice.

Ontari met the general’s angry gaze unfazed, she was assured now that the woman truly would not resort to any kind of physical punishment, so she doubted that they had anything to fear.

Marie’s eyes showed her nervousness and the girl seemed to have shrunk down in size slightly under Anya’s scrutinizing glare.

“Yes, general?” a female warrior had stepped closer to them at Anya’s call.

Ontari inspected the woman. The tattoos adoring the left side of her face easily identified her as Trikru. She had light brown hair, which was braided in a lot of thin braids falling down to the middle of her back, while the sides of her head had been shaved clean as well and the tattoos continued there. Her eyes had a similar brown tone to Anya’s and she hovered behind the general obediently.

“Teach them the language of the scouts” Anya ordered in a sharp tone. Talia had been a well-known scout before being abducted and brought into the Mountain. Marie’s education in that regard had not continued even once since Sierra’s death and if the girl was not interested in watching the sparring matches, she would learn theory instead.

Talia nodded immediately in acknowledgment, while Ontari frowned, not entirely sure what the general had meant. She was not aware that they spoke an additional language among the scouts.

“I expect you to be pay more attention now” the general chided Marie in a sharp tone, brown eyes disappointed.

Marie visibly winced at the reprimand and nodded her head meekly. Noting the disappointment and anger in her mentor’s face had been worse than a physical slap and stung just as much if not more. She wished to follow the general and apologize to her, but the woman had already turned around and strode back towards the other warriors with quick strides.

Ontari put a hand on the younger girl’s thigh, keeping her from standing up as well and lightly shook her head at the child.

“How much do you know already?” Talia asked, her brown eyes switching between both of them.

“Sierra taught me a bit” Marie answered truthfully, but she doubted that she still recognized a lot and they had not even gotten to the stage where she should have attempted to emit the various bird calls.

“Nothing” Ontari admitted with a frown. She did not truly see the sense in having to learn this, but who knew if it could come in handy someday. She was not aware that the scouts in Azgeda used any special communication system at all.

Talia nodded in acknowledgement “Tell me what you do remember” she requested from Marie, as she sat down cross-legged opposite of them.

Marie grimaced slightly before a look of concentration settled on her features and she searched through her memories frantically, trying to remember as much of the few lessons she had had with Sierra as possible.

Talia did not seem too impressed with the child’s knowledge and she sighed under her breath “We will start from the scratch then…” she said and immediately launched into an explanation of the basics.

Ontari felt her head swim with all this new information soon after and she was almost glad, when Anya returned to them some time later and called off the lesson for today. She had to admit that the communication system seemed rather genius, there were so many birds living in the trees surrounding Trikru that it would hardly be noticed if there were a few extra bird calls. She had already known how well versed the Trikru general was in suddenly vanishing between the trees and Ontari could only assume that most Trikru warriors would have mastered this skill, taken together with an additional communication system, it gave the warriors a very clear advantage in the woods. It was no wonder that she could not remember if Azgeda scouts used something similar, there simply was not enough wild life to allow something similar.

Talia bid them goodbye with a mute nod, agreeing with the general to continue teaching her charges daily for as long as they deemed it necessary.

Marie still seemed rather subdued as Anya led them back towards the tower, but the girl’s sullen mood was forgotten when they encountered some of the warriors who had been sent after the rest of the conclave on their way.

The girl’s grey eyes flitted over the warriors, searching for another nightblood and she gasped audibly when she spotted Nymo on one of the horses in front of a warrior. The boy seemed barely conscious and was hanging limply in the man’s arms. Marie was unable to spot any wounds as the warrior had wound his own cloak around the nightblood, obscuring him from view mostly.

While Marie’s attention was now completely fixed on Nymo, Anya had noticed something which the girl had not. Two other warriors were not alone on their horses either, but it looked as if they were transporting weirdly shaped packages, hidden beneath thick furs.

The general sighed deeply, she knew what this meant. The warriors would probably not have brought back some of their companions, but rather had found two nightbloods already perished. The nightblood was considered sacred, so they would be given special funeral rites.

She ushered both girls towards the tower even quicker and hoped that Marie would not come to the same conclusion before they had reached the tower. Marie had been on friendly terms with all of the nightbloods except Kato and Anya had no idea how the child would react to see that two of them had died. It would be a rather heavy blow to Lexa as well and the general dearly hoped that the rest of the conclave would return unharmed soon.

“Who has travelled with him?” Anya directed her question in a hushed tone at Ontari, too low for Marie to catch the words.

Ontari’s expression was rather hard to read but the general was relatively sure that the Ice Nation nightblood had already noticed what must have happened. “Saria and Gally had been paired with him” Ontari answered the general’s question and her dark eyes flitted to the weird bundle of furs minutely, assured by the general’s question that her instinctual assumption had been correct. It did not look as if Nymo was of good health either, so the next days would probably show if he perished as well.

Ontari frowned slightly, furrowing her brows. She had been convinced that she would feel relieved if the number of the nightbloods who would compete against her in the next conclave decreased, but the relieve was missing for some unknown reason from her mind.

Marie’s grey eyes still rested on Nymo and the worry was palpable in them.

Anya only hoped that the girl would not get the idea to try and heal the nightblood boy. She moved slightly closer to the child, ready to halt her movements physically if she suddenly decided to step even closer to the boy.

“The healers will take care of him” Anya addressed Marie intently, trying to get the girl’s focus back on herself and nudging her towards the entrance of the tower. A pair of healers was already waiting there and Anya knew that they should better go to the throne room. Lexa would surely call a halt to whatever meeting was ongoing currently when she heard the news.

Marie and Ontari were both silent during the ride with the elevator and Anya had to fight the urge to tap her foot impatiently at its slow pace.

As the general had expected, a meeting between the commander and the ambassadors was still ongoing, but she sent one of the warriors guarding the entrance to the throne room to Lexa with the message that something had come up which called for her attention immediately.

The young man visibly frowned, but went into the throne room without any protests. It did not take longer than a moment for the first ambassadors to file out of the room and Anya pulled Marie out of the way slightly.

The girl frowned up at her in obvious confusion, not understanding what was going on at all.

The guard motioned them inside only shortly after and they found Lexa sitting on her throne still.

The commander’s green eyes were visibly worried and seemed to scan over Marie first, assessing her mood, clearly thinking that something must have happened to their young charge. Her gaze turned to Anya expectantly a moment later when she could not find something amiss with Marie.

“Some of the warriors you have sent behind the conclave as reinforcement have returned” Anya proclaimed in a grave tone.

Lexa’s eyes widened a fraction, Anya’s whole posture was enough for her to know that whatever the warriors had found was not good.

“The healers take care of Nymo, as we speak” Anya added after a short pause.

Lexa inclined her head in acknowledgement, her brows creased. She had discussed with Titus who should be paired together, so she was well aware that Saria and Gally had been supposed to be together with the boy. This knowledge ultimately led her to the question if the three nightblood children had separated or if the other two had been brought back deceased to Polis. She sighed under her breath, sorrow consumed her mind. She had feared exactly this kind of outcome since Aden and Ontari had been brought back and confirmed that there had been many more bandits in the woods than they had assumed.

“Do you know how severely Nymo is wounded?” she asked, voice noticeably heavy.

Anya shook her head in the negative, she was sure that it would not take long until a healer would come to make their report. She was also fairly certain that a flamekeeper would seek out the commander soon enough to tell her which nightbloods had died.

Marie’s grey eyes were clouded as she looked between Anya and Lexa and the girl started to inquire “Should I try to…”

The girl was stopped before she could utter her whole suggestion though, Anya interrupting her in a sharp tone “No, Marie!”

Marie looked up at the general with a troubled expression, clearly not convinced. She wanted to say more and explain herself, but Lexa also rebuffed her quiet strongly.

Ontari watched the exchange with a frown, confused why both women were so sharp with the blonde girl at the moment which was highly uncharacteristic for them when it came to Marie. She did not understand what Marie might have wanted to ask, she would remember to ask the younger girl later what all this had been about.

It truly took only a few moments for a flamekeeper to knock at the door and rush inside to report. The flamekeeper was a young man from Trikru and his expression was grave.

“Heda” he addressed the commander with a solemn nod “I do not bring good news”.

Lexa inclined her head, motioning him to continue. News did not get better, simply because you kept silent and she knew what to expect after all.

“Two nightbloods have been brought back to Polis already dead” the man reported gravely “Saria from Delfikru and Gally from the Rock Line Clan. Nymo has been brought back as well, but he lives still. His injuries are severe, the healers are still tenting to him”.

Lexa nodded again, not saying a word. Her gaze rested on Marie, who truly looked shell shocked by the news, while Anya and Ontari both looked unfazed. She dismissed the flamekeeper immediately after, telling him to prepare the funeral rites for both nightbloods.

Marie surprised all three of them slightly, by mutely stepping directly in front of the throne and simply hugging the commander, saying that she was sorry to the woman.

Lexa enveloped the girl in her own arms, not sure who this hug was supposed to ground more out of the two of them. They now had already lost two nightbloods, while one was still fighting for his life and the whereabouts of Titus and the other three children was still unknown.

 

A very big thank you to all of those who have let me know that you are still enjoying the story =)

 

Previously in chapter 201

Anya is not satisfied with Marie’s lacking attention. She ordered Talia to teach both of them the language of the scouts. Nymo is brought back injured to Polis, while Saria and Gally have died.

 

Chapter 202

The mood in the commander’s quarters was rather sullen.

Clarke had come back to the tower early and had rushed to Lexa’s side after she had heard what had happened. She had wanted to console Lexa, but the commander had not wished to be consoled at the moment.

Lexa had sat down on the floor in front of her bed, cross-legged and immediately began mediating. While Clarke had followed the brunette and watched her antics with a frown. When she had stepped closer to Lexa and crouched down next to her, the commander’s green eyes had snapped open only for a moment and her pleaded “don’t” had been clipped and Clarke had backed off again.

Marie had sat down on one of the couches facing the fire pit immediately, staring into the dancing flames moodily. She wanted to go and look where Nymo was and see if she could heal him. She liked the boy and she did not wish for him to die. Marie was totally frustrated that Anya had not even let her voice her suggestion. She was aware that chances were high that she could in fact not heal her friend, but she would not know if she did not try it first.

She glanced up shortly and spotted Ontari hovering behind the couches indecisively. Clarke and Anya stood a few feet away and were lowly speaking to each other, too low for Marie to understand a word.

Anya was keenly aware of the sweat and dirt still clinging to her skin and how utterly uncomfortable Ontari seemed to be. She proclaimed that she would return to their shared quarters and Ontari turned to follow her with an almost relieved expression. She was not truly surprised when Marie asked to remain behind. Anya inclined her head in agreement but a slight warning glittered in her eyes “You will come straight back to our quarters later, no detours!”

Marie nodded easily, resisting the urge to roll her eyes at the woman. She looked over to Lexa, but the commander’s eyes were still closed and she huffed in annoyance.

“What is it?” Clarke addressed the girl, wandering over to her and sitting down on an armchair standing next to the couch.

Marie’s grey eyes clearly showed her frustration “I could heal Nymo” she vented, crossing her arms over her chest.

Clarke frowned, she still vividly remembered how Marie had lain in one of the beds in the med bay in the Ark, unconscious and on the verge of death. She had later learned that the girl had probably suffered from this weird aneurysm because she had tried too hard to heal her. She also knew how hesitant Lexa still was about outing their relationship to the clans and she could only hypothesize what dangers Marie would await if her power became public knowledge. Although she was a healer at heart, who rejoiced at the opportunity to safe lives, Clarke had to agree with Lexa and Anya that Marie’s talent was not predictable enough to be brought into the open. Both women regarded the girl as a daughter and a mother would never agree to bring her child into such open dangers.

“You might” she agreed cautiously “But there is no way of knowing for certain. Lexa and Anya want to know you protected…”

“I know” Marie interrupted her, voice rising slightly with her frustration “But I cannot just let him die! I could heal Ontari and Aden as well”. Marie’s grey eyes glittered angrily and her gaze bore into Clarke’s.

Clarke looked at the young girl with creased brows, she was caught off guard by Marie’s determination and she searched for words on how to calm her down again.

“You shall not” Lexa interjected in a sharp tone, standing up from the floor in one fluid graceful motion. Her green eyes were as hard as her tone and she stared the girl down relentlessly.

Marie met the commander’s hard stare for long moments, until she sighed dejectedly and lowered her eyes back to the flames. “I just want to help…” Marie said, voice low and noticeably quivering, eyes still focused into the flames in front of her.

Lexa’s features softened a fraction as she stepped closer to Marie and she put a reassuring hand onto her shoulder, giving it a light squeeze “I know, Marie, but it would not help if we have to increase security tenfold around you”.

Marie looked up with a pout on her lips and she nodded with a crestfallen expression. “Should Ontari not at least know of it?” she questioned cautiously “We share quarters after all…”

Lexa shook her head in the negative, her expression steadfast “No one is to know, too many already do” she stared into Marie’s eyes for a moment, waiting for the girl to incline her head in acknowledgment. “You have not told Ontari anything yet?” she asked, eyes boring down on the child, daring her to lie to her face.

Marie shook her head “No, I have not” she answered truthfully.

Lexa nodded, not having detected any lies in the child’s eyes. She sat down next to Clarke, putting a hand on one of her knees and smiling tiredly at her.

“Where do you go when you mediate?” Clarke asked, feeling the silence settle between them heavily.

Lexa frowned “I do not go anywhere” she answered, bewilderment flashing over her features.

Clarke chuckled slightly, shaking her head at the sometimes-clueless woman. She explained the phrase to the commander and watched realization pass over her expression.

“I communicate with the past commanders” Lexa now answered the original question.

Marie slightly turned away from the fire “How does that work?” she asked, interest sparked. She had not truly made much progress in reading the first commander’s journal yet, so she still had no idea how something like that could be possible.

Clarke seemed to have the same question and disbelieve was easy to spot in her blue eyes.

“I have been able to speak with the past commanders since the day of my ascension” Lexa explained a little “It took some time to get used to. But now I can speak to them in mediation, sometimes they speak to me in my sleep”.

Marie and Clarke both seemed equally confused. But Marie accepted Lexa’s words as a given easier, she had not come so much into contact with how technology worked, that she believed easier and her own talent had just appeared out of nowhere somehow as well.

A healer wanting to report on Nymo’s condition interrupted their conversation. Apparently, the boy’s injuries were severe and an infection seemed to settle in one of his hands.

Clarke offered to look at the boy as well, hoping that some of the medications from the Ark might be more potent and able to help the boy.

Marie wanted to accompany her, but Lexa physically grasped onto one of her wrists and shook her head, holding the child back until Clarke had left them.

Lexa had not missed the glint flashing through Marie’s eyes and knew that the girl would attempt to heal Nymo if she came into touching distance, no matter what she would say now.

Marie scowled at Lexa, her eyes narrowed at the commander’s hand which still held on to her wrist.

Lexa’s eyes contained a silent warning and Marie seemed to deflate instantly, sitting down next to the woman with a pout on her lips.

“I know that you wish to help” Lexa acknowledged the girl’s obvious urge “But this is not the way, exposing your talent and by thus putting yourself into danger will not help in the long run”. Her tone carried a note of strictness but her eyes were compassionate.

Marie nodded begrudgingly, the conflict remained in her gaze though and Lexa hoped that the girl would accept her words with time.

The girl leaned over against the commander’s frame and Lexa put her arm around Marie’s body, pulling the child closer against herself.

“Do you think the others are fine?” Marie asked after long moments, breaking the silence that had settled between them.

Lexa’s lips formed a thin line, before she answered in a grave tone “I do not know, Marie, but the fact that the scouts have not found any trace of them yet, is not good”.

Marie sighed, her brows creased together. “What happens if they are all dead?” the girl inquired in a low tone.

Lexa swallowed heavily. Her mind had already started to accept that the other three nightbloods would probably not return alive to the capitol. “Their bodies will be brought back to the capitol, if they can be located and they will be subjected to the funeral rites” she answered the question honestly. Nothing else would happen, life would continue as it always did. But she would need to send out more flamekeeper scouts to search through the clans for nightblood children. She had hoped to be able to at least modify the rules of the conclave in such a way that she could raise the age restriction. Lexa had wanted to proclaim a decree that no nightblood beneath ten summers would be able to compete in the conclave, but that would now only leave Ontari and Aden as possible candidates and the flamekeeper and the ambassadors would never accept such a decree now.

Marie hummed in acknowledgment. Her gaze was still focused on the flames and she could feel her mind getting slower, as she grew tired. She lightly shook her head, trying to shake it off.

Lexa felt the girl start to fidget and she tightened her arms around her “Rest” she told her charge under her breath and lowly began to hum the melody of the old lullaby to Marie, soothing the girl to sleep in only a few moments.

Lexa sighed, as she felt Marie body go limp in her embrace, carefully she eased the girl to lie on her side, pillowing her head on her own thigh. Gently she began to take out the girl’s braids, combing out her blonde hair with her fingers.

The changed conditions would make it impossible for Aden to accompany the army into the land of Azgeda. It would be irresponsible to allow the nightblood to leave the safety of the capitol if it was not absolutely necessary. Ontari on the other hand could still have valuable knowledge on the landscape they would travel. Taking the Ice Nation nightblood with them would still be risky, but Lexa knew already that Anya had planned to take the girl along. Ontari was certainly old enough and already had some experience. Marie also was deeply connected to the nightblood girl and the girl needed all the support that she could get right now.

Clarke stormed back into the commander’s quarters some time later, black blood clinging to her hands and an angry scowl etched into her features. A healer was following her quickly, still arguing about something.

“Tell me that you did not give this order!” Clarke all but thundered, eyes glittering dangerously.

Marie startled awake with a shriek tumbling from her lips, grey eyes widened and wild with fright.

Lexa quickly put her hands on the child’s shoulders, trying to calm her down before she could fall into a panic attack. Her lips thinned slightly and she raised a brow at Clarke “I do not know which order you speak of” she answered, trying to keep her tone calm, it got sharper slightly as she glared at the healer “Leave us!” she commanded sharply. Normally no one was granted entry into her quarters who had not been summoned or already had been heard by Titus.

The healer nodded frantically, turned on his heels and left the rooms without another word. He must have been aware that his mere presence in the commander’s quarters without having been asked for, was overstepping his place.

“I mean the order that the boy’s hand has to be saved at all costs” Clarke snarled, before the door could fall shut behind the healer “Even if it may cost him his life! You cannot be serious with this?!”

Lexa sighed, but she steeled herself, pulling up her façade again, looking back calmly at Clarke, unfazed by her boiling anger. “A nightblood with only one arm cannot fight sufficiently” she told the blonde woman simply as she stood from the couch to face off Clarke. She clasped her hands behind her back and stood facing the enraged healer with a calm façade.

“The boy will die!” Clarke shouted back, eyes narrowed in disbelief “Taking off his hand now, might save him”.

Lexa shook her head with a determined expression “Treat Nymo to the best of your abilities, but save his hand”.

“You are condemning him to death!” Clarke said through clenched teeth. Blue eyes hard and her lips thinned, disbelief was evident on her features “An amputation can save his life!”

“It might save his life now” Lexa retorted calmly “But it will condemn him to death later”. She knew that a nightblood who was physically impaired would never be able to hold himself in the conclave.

“You mean the damn conclave” Clarke hissed in anger, but desperation clouded her blue eyes “I can save him, Lexa, I can save his life. He can live with one hand”.

Lexa shook her head again, expression stony and hard “My order stands. Try what you can with your medicines from the Ark, but you will not take off Nymo’s hand”. Steel had infused her tone, the tone she used to subdue quarrelling ambassadors with.

The defeat flashing through Clarke’s eyes was replaced with incensed stubbornness only the fraction of a second later. “Fine!” she hissed “Do not expect me back tonight!” she added fierily, voice shaking from anger.

Lexa looked behind the blonde woman storming off with a sigh. She could understand her reasoning to a certain degree, but she could not stop the small sliver of irritation brewing in her mind. Although Clarke had truly begun to adapt to their culture, this conflict showed just how far she still to go to truly accept this world now surrounding her.

Sorrow threatened to cloud her mind, but Lexa pushed it to the far corner of her mind forcefully. Marie was looking up at her meekly, grey eyes slightly widened. The girl had obviously been startled by the whole exchange, but Lexa did not only see slight fright in her features. She could almost easily read the gears turning in the girl’s mind, probably thinking through again if she should not attempt to heal Nymo. Lexa knew that Marie had been particularly close to the boy, but it would not change her decision in the slightest.

She entertained the thought in her head to take Marie to Nymo and let the girl have her shot at healing him. But there was no way of telling if she would succeed. Even if the child was able to heal her friend, which was not guaranteed, how could they explain his miracle healing? By a blessing of the flame? But the boy was not commander, people would be more inclined to believe such a story then. She still vividly the effects on Marie after she had failed to heal Clarke and she could see the girl lying on the bed again, connected to tubes, as Abby told them that she was basically dead and she felt her chest tighten painfully at the memory.

Lexa shook her head, clearing her mind of her thoughts, feeling assured in her decision. As cruel as it may seem, if she had to choose between saving Nymo and protecting Marie, she would now choose the young girl without any sense of doubt and she was fairly certain that Anya would agree with her wholeheartedly.

“You will not let me try to heal Nymo” the girl said, shoulders hunched slightly and her brow furrowed. Her words had not been voiced as a plea or even a question, but rather a resigned statement.

Lexa’s lips thinned slightly in regret, as she shook her head in the negative “I cannot” she agreed with her charge’s previous words, voice heavy.

“Why not?” Marie asked, despite the fact that they had discussed it already.

Lexa crouched down slightly in front of Marie, bringing them onto the same level. She gazed deeply into her grey eyes, trying to focus on the love she felt for the young girl. “It is my obligation to keep you protected, Marie” she repeated her primary concern.

Marie frowned slightly and Lexa thought to detect a hint of accusation in her tone “But do you not have to protect the nightbloods more than me?”

The girl’s words felt like a stinging slap and Lexa swallowed. There was no precedent for their situation in their history. Never before had a commander taken a second and found more a child of their own than a mere second in it or had a biological child. She had to trust her instincts now and immediately from witnessing the girl’s talent for the first time, Lexa had known that it needed to be hidden from public knowledge. She knew that her mind was severely swayed by the love she held for the child, but she did not necessarily regard that as a negative point at the moment.

She followed her instincts now as well and spoke the words that she felt Marie probably needed to hear now. “I am pledged to protect my possible successors, yes, Marie. But your role is unprecedented as of yet” Lexa held Marie’s gaze and kept her tone strong “There is more than one nightblood, but there could never be a replacement for you, my little star”.

Marie’s grey eyes swam in a sheen of unshed tears, obviously deeply touched by her words and she seemed to search for something in the commander’s gaze, before she impulsively threw her arms around the commander’s neck, pushing her cheek into the crook of her throat.

Lexa knew that her words had a certain harshness to them. But all of the nightbloods had been raised with the blunt knowledge that only one of them would rise to become the next commander. She had known this as a certainty for the duration of her tutelage as well.

Several quiet moments passed, before Marie slightly backed out of their embrace. Her grey eyes were stormy with too many emotions for Lexa to decipher all at once. The child’s voice was low, almost too low to catch her words although they were not separated by much more than an inch. “Thank you” the girl whispered, awe riddling her tone.

“For what?” Lexa asked, not quite understanding to what Marie was referring. She would have expected gratitude from the girl if she had allowed her to try to heal Nymo, she had actually expected resistance from her now.

Hesitation flashed over Marie’s features as the girl averted her eyes, looking down as if she found something very interesting on the commander’s shirt all of a sudden.

Lexa had to strain her hearing hard to catch the girl’s mumbled words.

“For choosing me first” Marie answered, voice dropping lower “For…for being my M… my…” she paused and looked up through her lashes, uncertainty written over her features “…my Mommy…”. She looked down immediately again, obviously afraid to see rejection on the commander’s face.

Lexa felt her breath being knocked from her body at the girl’s words. Her heart seemed to stop for the beat of a second, before it began to beat fiercely. To Lexa it felt as if time had stopped suddenly and the moment stretched into eternity as she replayed the girl’s words in her mind. She was speechless for long moments, feeling a burst of emotions thrum through her veins and she let her lips pull into a full-fledged smile. She knew without the sliver of a doubt that she would find it extremely difficult not to always put the girl – she mentally corrected herself – her daughter first from now on.

“I am honoured to be a mother to you” she assured her charge, her tone not as strong as she had wished, deeply touched to acknowledge this change in their dynamic. Despite her otherwise sullen mood, Lexa felt lighter somehow.

 

Chapter 203

Lexa was entirely content to simply hold Marie for as long as the child needed. Her thoughts were running wild in her mind. The position was less than comfortable, but she had had to hold out in worse positions during scouting missions with Anya in her past anyway.

The funeral rites for Saria and Gally would take place at sundown and she would be needed to lead them as the commander. While Anya and Marie would not necessarily be complied to be present, Ontari would be expected to attend as a fellow nightblood, but Lexa was positive that Marie would wish to attend anyway.

She still held on to a faint sliver of hope that Titus had been able to defend Thalu, June and Kato. But Lexa doubted that the chances for their survival were high, the reinforcement she had sent behind them should have been able to locate them quicker in that case.

She had already decided to make usage of the troops who had already gathered in and directly around the capitol. Tension were rising in their camps, as the troops were antsy to finally start their march into the North. They were waiting impatiently for the blood of Ice Nation. Leading them against the bandits and erasing them now, before they got too strong or garnered the support of one or more of the clans, would at least divert the troops attention from the stretching wait and give them a sensible goal. Lexa’s mind would also rest easier when they finally would be able to march to the North, knowing that Polis was left behind without the continued threat of the bandits lurking in the woods. It was entirely possible that the bandits were only waiting for the coalition’s bandied troops to leave Polis vastly unprotected. Taking over Polis and with it the capitol of the coalition would be much easier then.

It would also show if taking Marie with them into the North was truly a good idea. Lexa knew that trying to convince Anya to leave the girl behind would be nearly impossible. But internally, Lexa was fearing the inevitable confrontation between Marie and Nia. No matter how much their charge would improve in the time that was left, there was no way of predicting how Marie would react once she came face to face with Nia again. It was entirely possible, that the child’s rationality would be turned off immediately. Nia had not just physically tortured the girl, but had corrupted her mind additionally. Lexa did not like the fact that she had to consider that there was a valid possibility of Marie suddenly even choosing to support Nia, if only out of pure trained fright, but it was still a likely outcome she would need to keep in mind. She hoped that the love Marie held for her and Anya would very well overrule whatever lasting impression Nia had left in her mind, but they would need to be aware of the possibility that it might just not be enough anyway.

Lexa had seen the effects of mental torture on warriors before. She had heard whispers of scouts from other clans, being broken completely in Nia’s clutches, now functioning as deadly assassins for the Ice queen. She shuddered to imagine what scars might be left behind on Marie’s gentle soul if Nia had managed to corrupt seasoned warriors.

When a knock resonated through her chambers, Lexa slightly backed away from Marie, only keeping her hands on the girl’s shoulders.

“Come in” she called out loudly enough for the guards at her door to hear.

Gustus’ head appeared in the slightly ajar door a moment later. His voice was calm and his expression did not reveal anything, but his dark eyes had a heavy compassionate shine to them “Commander, the flamekeepers have finished their preparations for the funeral rites” he proclaimed.

Lexa nodded, taking a deep breath and schooling her features again. She was not looking forward to the funeral rites, but they needed to happen as soon as possible.

“I will be there shortly” Lexa proclaimed, rising completely. She felt the muscles in her thigh tingle uncomfortably when her weight shifted. She needed to wash her face clean of the warpaint she was still wearing. Funeral rites were not the right occasion to wear it.

Gustus nodded and closed the door behind him. They could hear him speak to someone outside of the doors to the commander’s quarters, probably telling the flamekeeper what the commander had just said. But his voice was too muffled by the closed door to catch the exact words.

“Go to Anya” Lexa ordered Marie in a calm tone “Tell her that the funeral rites will start soon”.

Marie nodded with a troubled expression, standing from the couch as her whole posture screamed off the loss the conclave had already suffered.

“You do not have to attend” Lexa told her charge, green eyes softened noticeably.

As she had expected, Marie shook her head in the negative “I want to be there to honour their life” she reasoned in a subdued tone.

Lexa inclined her head in silent acceptance, giving the girl the hint of a smile as encouragement. “Death is a part of life, Marie” she lectured the girl in a firm tone.

Marie nodded “I know” she echoed her agreement. She would not have agreed months ago, but she did now. Death was inevitable to all of them, she only hoped that Lexa, Anya and Ontari would not fall anytime soon. She did not know if she would be able to cope with loosing either of them.

Marie left the room mutely, feet visibly dragging. She did not look at Gustus and the other guard standing beside the door, but she felt the weight of their gazes following her down the corridor nevertheless. She had gotten used to the continual presence of guards, handmaidens and all the other people working permanently all around the tower and they all knew who she was anyway.

She had stopped knocking at the door to the quarters she shared with Anya and Ontari, the general had reprimanded her often enough for the habit to finally drop it for good. She smiled slightly at Loras in silent greeting; the man was frequently enough on guard duty at their quarters that Marie had asked after his name some time ago and now easily recognized him.

The young man inclined his head with a friendly expression and immediately opened the door for the blonde girl.

Marie found Anya sitting at the table, a book in front of the general, the sites visibly weathered by age. Ontari was lying on her bed, back turned towards the general, but still dressed in the clothing she had worn before. The nightblood did not turn at her arrival, so Marie assumed her to be sleeping or at least dozing lightly.

The general had looked up at her entrance immediately and her brown eyes clearly showed the worry she obviously still felt for her.

“Lexa told me to inform you that the funeral rites will start soon” Marie relayed her message before Anya could speak. She breathed out a sigh. She knew that the grounders believed to set free the souls of the dead so that they could be reborn into another life and Marie dearly hoped that this believe was true.

Anya inclined her head, closing the book with a resonating snap. From the corner of her eyes she had noticed Ontari shift slightly, indicating that the girl was indeed not really sleeping. Ontari had not said a single word since they had returned to their quarters together. Anya had preferred to let the girl sort through whatever was running through her mind in silence, while she had bathed and dressed in clean clothes. She had wanted to speak to the nightblood girl after her bath, but Ontari had already been pretending to sleep then and Anya had chosen to simply go with her charade. If the girl did not wish to speak, she would not force her, she doubted good would come out of that anyway.

“You wish to attend” Anya assessed, no judgement in her tone, already aware of her young charge’s decision. “Get up, Ontari” she addressed the nightblood girl, tone slightly louder and sharper “You do not have the luxury of deciding to attend or not” she informed the girl, when Ontari did not react at once.

When the girl still made no movement to get up, Anya stood from her chair quickly, letting it scrap over the floor loudly “Do not make me physically drag you there” she snapped at the girl. Surprised by the girl’s sudden resistance against her command, the girl had not been rebellious in any way since she had officially taken her on as her second. In fact, the girl had behaved in an exemplary manner until now and Anya was wondering about what had prompted the change.

Ontari finally rose from the bed, expression hard and clearly intent on still resisting. “Why should I?” she asked in an uncharacteristic petulant tone, dark eyes glaring openly at the general.

Anya frowned at the girl, anger rising in her veins. The girl had had the perfect opportunity to discuss the matter with her long before and had chosen to stew in silence instead. They did not have time for this now.

“Marie, go ahead and tell Lexa that we will be there shortly” Anya addressed Marie. The blonde girl was visibly hesitant to follow her order, but a light glare sent the girl into action quickly enough and Anya waited until the door fell shut behind Marie, before she turned her full attention back to Ontari.

“You will honour the death of the nightbloods as you are obliged to by attending” Anya said in a hard tone, dark eyes taxing Ontari “It would be a severe insult not to” she added, her tone carrying a warning tone.

“It would not be in Azgeda” Ontari retorted, crossing her arms over her chest. Ice Nation did not share the custom of burning their dead. Only those having fallen under high grazes were bestowed this honour. Being robbed and killed by bandits did not qualify for an honoured death in her eyes. She did not know why she felt so upset at the prospect of having to see their bodies burn. She had seen her fair share of death already and she never been affected by it before. But Ontari knew that she did not wish to be there for their bodies to burn.

Anya snarled in impatience at the girl’s attitude. She pinched the bridge of her nose “We do not have time to discuss about different views on funeral rites right now, Ontari!” Anya barked at the girl. She guessed that Lexa would not start with the rites until they attended and she could envision how the commander was feeling, she did not wish to keep her waiting unnecessarily.

Anya feared that she would truly have to physically drag the stubborn girl to attend the funeral rites, she could see that snapping at the girl was not changing her attitude one bit. She took a deep breath, trying to reign in her rising impatience, before she truly lost her patience with the girl. It would not help their still fragile bond one bit.

She took the time to actually take a closer look at the girl’s expression. Ontari may have put up a rebellious front, but Anya thought to spot slight fear and definite reluctance in her dark eyes. She chided herself a fool in her mind. Of course, the situation would have been upsetting to the nightblood girl. She had assumed that Ontari was unaffected by the loss of the two nightbloods simply because she knew that the girl had not formed any personal ties to them, but clearly, she had been wrong. Anya was not sure if the girl was truly mourning for their death, but she somehow doubted that. Maybe their deaths had just driven home that the situation could have ended much differently. Anya knew that Ontari had been raised to think of herself as invincible, seeing physical proof of the fact, that she truly was not, would surely upset her.

Anya softened her expression noticeably and stepped closer to Ontari. She thought about offering a reassuring touch to her, but was uncertain of how the Ice Nation nightblood would conceive such a gesture, so she refrained. “You may not like to attend, Ontari” she acknowledged the girl’s obvious reluctance in an understand tone “If you do not think of it as an honour to Saria and Gally, which no one can force you to, accept it as a necessity and if that is not enough, offer your support to Marie by being there”. She had added the last part in the hopes of swaying the stubborn girl, when her expression had only changed slightly. To her internal relieve she could see most of the girl’s reluctance melt from her features at the mention of Marie.

Ontari inclined her head in silent agreement. She knew that her denial to attend was irrational and she had already assumed that the conclave’s attendance was mandatory. She had still hoped to be let off, but had known that the chances had only been minimal at best. She steeled herself, letting her expression go completely blank.

Anya nodded, breathing a sigh of relieve. She would need to impart into Ontari as soon as possible that she could not accept any disobedience in such important matters. She knew that she was treating both of her charges differently. She treated Marie way softer and was more inclined to let something slide with her. She should have expected for Ontari to test out her own limits sooner and she would need to somehow find a balance in how she treated both girls. She doubted that Ontari would expect her to be treated in exactly the same fashion as she fared with Marie, their bond was way not deep enough for that, but it would be unfair of her to keep treating Ontari so harshly. The girl had earned her trust after all.

“You are doing well” Anya awkwardly tried to acknowledge the girl’s change of mind. She tried to supress the frown wanting to rise on her features. She still found it much weirder to deal with Ontari in even a slightly softer way, while she had no problems any longer to be soft for Marie. Maybe the Ice Nation nightblood would do well with at least a little bit of softness and acknowledgment as well.

Surprise flashed over Ontari’s features, breaking her blank mask. The general had completely caught her off guard with her words. She did not know what she should say to the woman, so she only met her gaze mutely.

Anya motioned the nightblood to get moving after another short moment. They should get going anyway.

The way to the floor which housed the conclave passed in a heavy silence. Anya kept watch of Ontari from the corner of her eyes, but the girl wore a blank expression, standing tall and rigid in the elevator and staring at the wall without even blinking.

The room Anya led them too was already prepared. Lexa stood in front of two tables. The dead nightblood children had been covered with bright cloths, a black line had been drawn on the middle, usually done with the deceased blood. Flowers had been placed around them on the tables, together with a few candles.

The commander looked up at their entrance and nodded at the guards standing at the doors. The guards immediately closed the door behind them.

Anya was slightly surprised to see Clarke standing in the background, supporting Nymo in standing. The boy must have been coherent enough to insist on attending the funeral rites. Aden also stood in front of the tables, a slight grimace on his features as he was visibly favouring his uninjured leg. Marie stood beside the sandy-haired boy, but looked over her shoulder at Anya and Ontari when they entered.

Kyla, Ryno and Boo stood close to Aden, holding onto each other in silent support.

The girl’s expression turned slightly pleading, when she looked at Ontari. Lexa had explained to her that usually only the commander, leading flamekeeper and the other nightbloods were present at these funeral rites. Anya would need to stay in the background, just like Clarke already did. Her own position as Lexa’s second and having received at least parts of the education of a flamekeeper, allowed her to stand in front as well and Marie had been downtrodden when the commander had told her that she could not stand with her during the ceremony. She hoped that Ontari could come over to her instead.

The nightblood girl stepped over to Marie mutely, giving in to her silent plea willingly. Ontari had become practised enough at reading the blonde girl to understand her expression without any need for actual words.

Her dark eyes connected with Aden’s blue ones shortly, inclining her head in silent greeting. The boy acknowledged her gesture in kind before his eyes returned to Lexa.

She had been slightly surprised that Anya had led them here and not outside as she had expected that the nightblood children would be burnt immediately, but apparently the customs in Polis were different.

Marie had no real inclination as to what exactly would transpire now as well, but she felt grateful to feel Ontari’s presence beside her and she looked up at the dark-haired girl shortly, before Lexa cleared her throat, calling everyone’s attention to herself.

Lexa swallowed down the lump lodged in her throat, but she let the grieve coursing through her veins show in her eyes. She held a short speech about Saria and Gally, praising their universal strengths. She pointed out what had apparently made them each so worthy of their nightblood and what their loss should mean to all of them.

Afterwards the flamekeeper, substituting for Titus, spoke a few words in addition. At last, asking all of them to honour the two fallen nightbloods by keeping them vigil for now.

The man retrieved a bowl with red colour from somewhere and drew the signs of the commander onto the cloths which were wrapped around Saria and Gally.

Marie had tears shining in her grey eyes, but she refused to let them fall. Her gaze was focused on the candles burning down on the tables. Once they would have burned down completely, the vigil would be finished and the nightbloods’ corpses would be burnt to set their souls free. The colour which had been drawn by the flamekeeper painfully reminded her of the prank they had all played together on Titus and she swallowed down half of a sob, bubbling from her mouth unbidden.

Ontari silently wrapped an arm around the younger girl, pulling her into a one-armed hug, trying to console her without words. Although she was not familiar with these funeral rites, she knew that a vigil had to pass in silence. She heard some whispered words in the background and glanced over her shoulder. Anya and Clarke seemed to exchange something under their breath. She noticed how Nymo seemed to be swaying on his feet, sweat glistened on his face, he was obviously running a high fever, indicating a severe infection.

Lexa looked over to them as well, slight irritation at the interruption flashing over her features. But it was replaced with worry at the apparent worsened condition of Nymo. She did not interfere when Clarke and Anya together removed Nymo, who had put up a feeble attempt at resistance, from the room.

Ontari stopped Marie from going behind Anya and Clarke, by tightening her arm around the younger girl. She knew that leaving in the middle of a vigil would not be tolerated as well and the commander seemed irate enough already without her charge causing another scene additionally.

 

 

Chapter 204

Time seemed to slow down as they stood vigil in silence together.

Lexa had hoped that she would never again have to hold a funeral rite for one of the children she had pledged to teach and raise as candidates to succeed her. It pained her deeply to be forced to do so now. She had seen Nymo’s condition and she could only pray that Clarke’s medications from the Ark could save the boy or they would probably be repeating this in the coming days for him as well. Added to the fact that she was expecting for the three missing nightbloods to have already died as well, Lexa could only steel herself.

In her opinion, the children had never been supposed to die before her. The natural cycle would have been for the children to die in the next conclave and for one of them to take up her place. She should not have the obligation to free their spirits.

But she also knew that she was not the only one grieving for the two children. Especially the three youngest nightbloods seemed grief-stricken and their sobs were the only thing disturbing the otherwise silent room.

Lexa was slightly surprised that Marie was not crying with them, but she was internally grateful that Ontari was showing her support for the young girl.

She had pledged to protect the nightbloods, all of them, and she had obviously failed miserably at that. Lexa knew that she was not the only one to blame for their death, as they had sent enough warriors to protect them. But still, she had not been there to personally protect the children. She allowed herself to feel the guilt and weight of their deaths. She could not allow herself to be weighted down by the guilt clouding her mind later, but she could wallow in it as long as they stood vigil for them.

Knowing that Clarke was still angry at her, did not lighten Lexa’s mood in the slightest. Outwardly, she had not reacted to Clarke glaring at her in silence, the long minutes they had waited for Anya and Ontari to arrive, but internally Lexa felt disheartened. She wished to reconcile with her love, needing her strength now, but she knew Clarke well enough to be aware that Clarke would not be appeased by anything beside her giving in and allowing her to amputate Nymo’s hand.

It seemed, that the day held more bad news still. The candles had only burnt down halfway through, when the doors were pushed open loudly. Lexa’s head span around, her eyes narrowed and nostrils flared in irritation at yet another interruption, but the angry retort died on her tongue.

Titus stood in the opened door and June followed on his heels.

Lexa quickly let her gaze travel over both of them. Her previous teacher looked exhausted, deep bags had formed under his eyes and there was more than one scrape visibly on his skin. A bandage peaked through under the flowing sleeves of his robes and he limped in addition.

“Heda” he inclined his head solemnly and Lexa could already read the deep sorrow in his dark eyes.

June was visibly injured, as well as obviously deeply exhausted as well. One of her arms was bandaged from the shoulder to her hand and a deep graze ran from her hairline down the left side of her face, disappearing under her dark hair. 

“Thalu and Kato?” was all Lexa asked and she sighed deeply at the flamekeeper’s expression.

“They are prepared as we speak” Titus retorted gravely, bloodshot eyes lowered to the floor in obvious shame. He had failed to protect his pupils and had watched them die, unable to save them.

The nightblood children, save Ontari, all visibly looked shocked at the information. Boo seemed to take it the hardest, his sobbing increasing in volume tenfold. The young red-haired boy had taken a great liking to Thalu in the last months and she had been his primary attachment figure.

Aden pulled the young boy into a hug, grimace deepening as he shifted his weight more on his injured leg, trying to console him somehow.

Marie looked between Lexa and Titus in obvious shock, before she turned slightly in Ontari’s one-armed hug, wrapping her own arms around the girl’s middle and pushing her face into her dark shirt.

Lexa inclined her head in acknowledgement, before she addressed the flamekeeper which had substituted Titus before. “Have them brought here as soon as possible” she harshly ordered. They could very well hold the funeral rites for all of them at once.

The bleak truth was that they had lost four nightbloods in the span of a few days with Nymo’s fate still uncertain. Lexa did not think that so many of the nightblood children had ever died at once. It happened on occasion that one of them died in a training accident or something similar, but this was a new scale. She would definitely lead the army to erase the bandits as soon as possible, if only to avenge the children they had killed.

Ontari tightened her uninjured arm around Marie. Her thoughts circled on the information that Kato had apparently been killed as well and she could not help the small surge of relieve coursing through her veins. The boy would have undoubtedly continued to cause trouble for her and Marie and getting rid of him this way, was acceptable in her opinion.

Her dark eyes wandered over the nightbloods gathered in the room and a small frown appeared on her features. Ontari was aware that she was injured as well, but all of the others being old enough to compete in the conclave were as well. Would a conclave occur this very night, she was certain that Aden would lose, having difficulties to simply stand without the added strain of having to fight. June seemed to have a similar injury to herself, but Ontari knew that the girl was physically weaker than herself. Nymo would be too out of it to even attempt to protect himself, which would almost guarantee her success in a conclave.

For the briefest flash of a moment, Ontari envisioned killing Lexa single-handedly, sworn oath or not. No one would be able to stop her rise to become commander then. She could stop the war against Ice Nation. She was sure that it would lure Nia into the capitol under the assumption that she would still be loyal to her. How surprised the woman would be when she sliced her throat?

She was pulled out of her thoughts, when Marie shifted slightly, jostling her injured limp in the process and she hissed under her breath, wondering if some higher being was punishing her for even entertaining something like this in her mind.

Ontari banished her thoughts altogether forcefully from her mind. Marie’s grey eyes looked at her with such trust, swimming in a sheen of unshed tears. She knew without the sliver of doubt that Marie would never forgive her, if she assassinated Lexa. In all honesty, she did not truly wish to kill her either. She had gotten to know too much of the woman the commander truly was, to be able to kill her without any kind of hesitation now.

June stepped closer to the other nightbloods and Kyla and Ryno latched onto her immediately. The girl comforted them to the best of her abilities. Grieve was etched deeply into her features as well. They had briefly seen Nymo being helped down the corridor, which told her that Gally and Saria were under those cloths.

Titus stepped closer to Lexa and both exchanged a few whispered words. Marie tried to strain her hearing, turning her head slightly and peering over, but they were speaking too low for her to understand.

Both fell silent, when the doors were pushed open again and two more tables were wheeled into the room, already prepared in the same fashion. Marie shuddered quiet strongly when she noticed that a leg seemed to be missing from Kato’s body.

More candles were lighted, more heavy words were spoken and the vigil continued as the atmosphere turned oppressive with every passing second.

Marie had lost the battle against her tears and Ontari felt her shirt getting damp with her tears where she had pressed her face against it. But Ontari did not even think about pushing her away either.

Anya had returned to the room some time ago, expression clearly expressing her condolence. But the general stayed in the background, as her position required, content to physically see Maire and Ontari. She felt her mind projected back to Arkadia, where they had been sure to have to bring back her dead body to Polis and the small substitute funeral rite they had held for Marie and she dearly hoped that they would never have to truly see her body burn. She also hoped that she did not have to witness the same rite for Ontari. Watching Tris’ body burn and mourn for her, had been a grave enough loss.

It seemed to take forever for the candles to finally burn out. While the vigil was private to the conclave, the commander and the leading flamekeeper, burning the bodies of fallen nightbloods was publicly held in front of the tower. The pyres would be being erected right at this moment.

Marie had lost all sense of time and seemed slightly startled when Ontari squeezed her shoulder to get her attention. She blinked at the older girl once and a frown settled on her features when she realized that the tables on which the nightbloods had lain had already been removed. How could she have missed that?

“It is time to go” Ontari told the blonde girl in a hushed tone.

Marie inclined her head mutely and she felt slightly dizzy as she backed off from Ontari completely. She swayed on her feet a little and was caught off guard by a pair of strong hands settling on her shoulders and stabilizing her. She twisted around to look over her shoulder and met Anya’s worried gaze. “I am fine” she assured the general and Ontari likewise “Just a bit dizzy” she added.

Anya nodded, her eyes quickly scanning the girl over. She could not detect the signs of an infection in her young charge, she would still take a look at all her wounds before they turned in for the night, just to be sure. She still could hear Clarke’s angry words about Lexa’s decision to deny her to amputate Nymo’s clearly infected hand ringing loudly in her ears. She had tried to reason with the blonde healer but Clarke had been so set in her mind that her words had been wasted on her. Anya knew that Lexa could not have come to another decision sensibly although she was sure that it would pain the young leader deeply, something Clarke stubbornly wanted to ignore.

She hoped that Marie was simply showing effects of exhaustion. They had not had the opportunity to eat dinner and the vigil had taken quiet some time already. Setting the spirits of the fallen nightbloods free would take them way into the middle of the night.

Marie shortly glanced at Lexa, but the commander was standing with her back towards them, obviously speaking lowly with Titus.

The three youngest nightblood children looked nearly asleep on their feet, but Marie doubted they would wish to go to bed yet, probably insisting to see the pyres burn.

When Lexa and Titus broke apart, they led the nightbloods out of the room in slow steps, probably considerate of Aden who seemed to have great difficulties with walking.

Marie was surprised to see so many people waiting for the small procession. The place in front of the tower was crowded with citizens of Polis and it looked like quite a number of the warriors wo had come here to march into the north, were also standing among them now.

Lexa’s words carried easily over the whole crowd. She spoke in high terms of the fallen nightbloods and acknowledged the unity among the coalition, as well as proclaiming that the bandits who were responsible for this bloodshed would be annihilated by the army.

Her heart felt heavy as she was handed a torch and ignited one pyre after the other. The flames radiated heat quickly, but Lexa still felt a bone-deep coldness in her body. Her gaze travelled to Anya and Marie shortly. The general had her arms draped around the young girl, her coat enveloping them both, while Marie held onto her hands. The child must have sensed the weight of her gaze, as she looked up to her minutely. Their gazes locked for long moments and Marie smiled slightly at her, although her grey eyes were deeply laden with sadness. She would have liked nothing better than to step over to Marie and connect with her through at least a soft touch, but Lexa knew that she should not. So, she averted her eyes back to the flames consuming the bodies of the fallen nightbloods slowly.

Marie was glad when Anya signalled them it would be alright for them to return to the tower now, once the bodies had been consumed by the fire completely and Lexa had already turned around and heeded towards the tower. She just wanted to sleep and hopefully forget that this day had ever happened. She held on tightly to one of Anya’s hand, reluctant to lose the contact completely and she was relieved that woman indulged her mutely, not even commenting at all.

Ontari had not said a single word since they had left the tower. Her thoughts were still circling around the fact that she had entertained the idea of taking out the commander to take her place. The only merit the plan would have had, would have been the easy possibility to take out Nia. But still, the whole idea had somehow shocked her, although Ontari could not put a finger onto the reason. She wanted to speak with someone about her thoughts. She doubted speaking with Marie, would have any good consequences as she did not wish to risk their friendship. She was unsure how the blonde girl would perceive something like that.

Ontari regarded the general out of the corner of her eyes when they stepped into the elevator. The woman still held one of Marie’s hands as the girl now leaned against her taller frame. She seemed focused on Marie entirely. Their bond was not strong in any form yet and she knew how deeply the general still felt for her previous second. So, she ruled the Trikru woman out as a viable option as well. Her gaze finally turned to the commander, the woman’s expression was mostly blank but her green eyes showed her sorrow. Something fell into place in her mind and Ontari was certain that she needed to directly speak with the commander in person.

Lexa left in the direction of her quarters alone, deeply lost in her thoughts and simply wishing to divest herself of the regalia of the commander, feeling it weighing her down now, more than ever.

Anya steered Marie directly into their quarters. The blonde girl trudged over to the general’s bed in the process of lying down. Risha, who had made herself at home on it already, wagged her tail at her human in greeting.

“Hi girl” Marie greeted the wolf in a tired tone, loosening her coat and letting it fall to the floor, not particularly caring at all.

“Don’t lie down” Anya addressed the girl sharply and motioned her towards the bathroom.

“I am fine” Marie insisted and her tone turned whiny “I just wanna sleep…”

“You can in a moment” Anya assured, levelling the girl with a slight glare, not particularly in the mood to deal with her talking back at the moment. She would insist on taking a look at Marie’s wounds, infections needed to be treated as soon as possible and she would not take any chances with the girl’s health.

Marie followed Anya’s orders with an audible groan and a role of her eyes. “You can go to sleep” Anya told Ontari with a glance over her shoulder before her brown eyes narrowed down at Marie, having enough from her cheek for now.

Ontari hovered in the middle of the room uncertainly. Risha trotted over to her and she lightly let her fingers glide over the wolf’s muzzle, grateful that the wolf was not licking at her fingers again. She had lost her fright of this particular wolf for good.

Coming to a decision, Ontari turned on her heels and silently left their quarters again. She wondered if the commander would even be willing to speak with her at this moment, but she hoped so.

The two guards standing post at the commander’s quarters looked at her with judging gazes. She had come to know Gustus at least a little, but she was unfamiliar with this particular guards.

“Is the commander’s second alright?” one of the men asked her after a moment of silence.

Ontari inclined her head in quick agreement “I want to speak to the comm…” she began to voice her reason for being there in the first place.

But the man interrupted her sharply “The commander will not see anyone now”.

Ontari huffed in annoyance, but she nodded, feeling her shoulders sag in slight defeat.

“Let her pass” Lexa’s muffled voice suddenly ended her retreat from behind the closed doors.

The guards opened the doors for her immediately and Ontari slipped inside, steps slightly hesitant. Although she wished to talk to the woman, she was unsure of the commander’s reaction to her words. She was simply certain that she would not be able to rest peacefully if she did not speak with the commander now.

“What brings you here?” Lexa addressed her, standing in the middle of the room. She had just shrugged out of the regalia of the commander and was in the process of taking out her braids. She wondered why the nightblood girl was seeking her out. She had expected that something was up with Marie when she had identified Ontari’s voice. Lexa felt tired and exhausted and wished to rest for what little time remained of the night, but whatever troubled the nightblood girl must be important to bring her to her quarters at all.

Ontari looked at the older woman for long silent moments, a conflict flashing through her dark eyes and Lexa patiently waited for her to sort through her thoughts.

The nightblood’s voice was slightly subdued as she retold to the commander what thoughts she had allowed herself to entertain during the vigil.

Lexa furrowed her brow, scanning the girl for visible weapons quickly. Her tired mind tried frantically to identify why the girl was telling her this at all. It was obvious that it weighed heavily on the girl’s mind. It took her quite some long moments to figure out what emotions flashed through the girl’s dark eyes. The most prominent one was guilt.

Lexa regarded the girl in silence for another long moment, the way she squirmed under the weight of her gaze was uncharacteristic for the Ice Nation nightblood and backed up her assumption of the girl feeling guilty.

“And yet, you did not exploit my moment of weakness” she commented at last. Lexa’s first instincts had been to reach out to the weapons, she had already discarded on the table in front of her, but she highly doubted it would be necessary. The girl had not come here to kill her.

Ontari’s head snapped up again, as she had lowered her gaze before. She thought for a moment that the commander would execute her now and that she had severely misjudged how the Trikru woman would react. “No” she agreed, settling to stay absolutely honest now “And I will not ever” she promised.

Lexa regarded the girl for another long moment, before she nodded, a silent understanding passing between them. The girl had officially already pledged herself to Lexa as the commander, but Titus had warned her that such an oath could be twisted if needed. The girl’s prime motivation to even swear the oath back then had surely be to save her own skin and to be close to Marie. But today the girl had chosen not to act on her chances out of her own will. Seeing how guilty the girl felt for even entertaining such thoughts and taking the courage to speak with her about them, showed clearly to Lexa that the girl’s opinion of her had shifted dramatically and that was not only caused by Marie now. Lexa did not need to know what exactly had made Ontari shift her loyalties in such a way, but it was good to be assured of them like this.

She inclined her head in mute acknowledgment “I appreciate and will not forget your honesty, Ontari”.

 

 

Chapter 205

Anya helped Marie in undressing so that it happened quicker. The girl’s movements were slow, she was obviously truly exhausted.

A part of the wounds on Marie’s collar bone seemed to have reopened and the bandage stuck to the skin slightly.

Marie winced and hissed as Anya tried to pry it from the girl’s skin as gently as possible.

Anya looked at the girl apologetically and she swiftly applied some of the ointment Clarke had left behind to treat the girl’s wounds. Fortunately, she could not find any wound which seemed infected. So, she assisted the girl to get into comfier clothes to sleep in, before she at last took a look at the girl’s hand. She frowned slightly, the skin around the deep cut looked slightly red and she thought it felt warmer to the touch. She applied some of the ointment as well on the wound, keeping a tight hold on the girl’s hand when she tried to retract it at the contact.

“It stings” Marie complained whiney, trying to pull her hand free again. Her grey eyes more alert again and looked at Anya accusingly.

“I know” Anya acknowledged and tried to keep patient with the girl “Keep still for a moment longer” she ordered strictly and applied a clean bandage to the girl’s hand. She would have Clarke take a look at the wound on the next day as well.

“Do you think Nymo will survive?” Marie asked a moment later, voice subdued and expression crestfallen.

Anya remained on her knees in front of the girl “I do not know, Marie” she answered honestly. There was no way of telling if Clarke’s medicines would be enough to battle the infection in his body. She had seen herself just how badly impaired the boy’s health already was.

“Lexa said that she did not wish to risk me trying to heal him” Marie informed the woman in a sad tone. She had not truly expected a positive answer anyway.

Anya nodded in agreement, she had already anticipated that Marie would have asked Lexa to see Nymo. They both knew of the friendship between the two children, but she would not have said anything different to Marie than Lexa already had. She would protect Marie at all costs and Lexa must see that in a similar fashion.

Anya sent Marie ahead to bed, relieving herself quickly. She was surprised, when she stepped back into the main room of their quarters, to spot Marie standing in the opened door, speaking with one of the guards lowly.

The young girl frowned as she turned back to face the general “Ontari went to see Lexa” she informed her.

“Can’t we go there?” she asked, eyes big and pleading “Only for tonight?” she added, her best attempt at an innocent look directed at Anya.

The general sighed under her breath. The day had been difficult and taxing for all of them and she felt her resolve break. “You shall ask Lexa” she agreed with another sigh.

Marie smiled immediately, feeling pretty certain that the commander would not let her down. She was curious why Ontari had sought out Lexa as well.

Anya knew that she would probably regret this decision tomorrow night. She already chastised herself a fool in her mind, but she had been unable to deny the girl like that. She had half expected another break down from the girl, anticipating how upsetting the situation must be to her, after seeing effect already in Ontari. Aside the fact that Marie immediately grasped hold of one of her hands again, the girl outwardly seemed to do well enough.

“Come on then, before I regain my common sense” Anya said to the girl, voice slightly sarcastic.

Marie frowned, trying to understand if Anya had meant that literately or not. Not wanting to take any chances, she slightly pulled at Anya’s hand urging her to get moving. Risha jumped down from the general’s bed as well, obviously intent on accompanying her human.

The guards opened the door to the commander’s quarters for them without any questions asked. They knew that the general and the commander’s second were free to enter at any time.

Lexa looked away from Ontari at their entrance, her brow furrowed in obvious confusion.

“I wanna stay tonight…” Marie proclaimed, tone slightly whiny again, as she gave Lexa another perfectly innocent look.

The slight irritation melted from Lexa’s features instantly and she inclined her head without even hesitating for a second.

Anya rolled her eyes subtly at her former second, Marie sure as hell had the woman totally wrapped around her little finger, she doubted there would be anything in Lexa’s might that she would deny the child if she asked. Clarke had told her already that she would not leave Nymo’s bedside for the night, so she was not surprised at the healer’s absence in the slightest.

Ontari shuffled her feet awkwardly, it did not look as if the general intended to return to their own quarters. “I shall go…” she said, but was interrupted by the commander.

“You may sleep on the couch if you please” Lexa offered. She knew that the situation was less than ideal, but Anya would probably not wish to force the nightblood girl to be on her own now. Ontari had proven to be trustworthy again tonight and she knew that she was acknowledging it as such by her offer.

Ontari contemplated the offer for a moment, before she inclined her head. It would probably be perceived as rude, if she declined any way. The situation was weird at best, but she would go with it for now.

“Thank you” Marie smiled brighter at Lexa, stepping closer to her and hugging the commander around the middle for a moment.

Lexa’s lips tilted into a slight smile as well as she let her fingers comb through girl’s blonde hair “Off to bed with you” she gave the girl a gentle nudge.

Anya had stepped closer to Ontari and mutely helped her unbuckle her coat and crouched down to unlace the girl’s boots for her. Ontari looked at the general with a grateful expression, but stayed silent.

“Sleep” was the only thing Anya said, as she stood again and gave the nightblood girl a nod. She took of her own coat and boots, joining Marie in the huge bed.

Marie’s grey eyes immediately connected with hers, before the child yawned deeply.

Lexa joined them only a moment later, lying down on Marie’s other side and scooting closely to the child. Risha jumped onto the foot of the bed and rolled herself together there.

“Love you” the girl mumbled sleepily, probably directed at both of them equally. She fidgeted for a moment until she had found a comfortable spot and drifted off almost immediately.

The rest of the night passed in a much calmer fashion than Anya had anticipated. Marie seemed calmed enough by their combined presence that she slept through the night without truly waking once.

Lexa had calmed the child down on the single instance where she had started to toss and turn, but Marie had not truly woken up. The commander herself had not found rest easily in the past night. Guilt about the deaths of four of her nightbloods added together with the unresolved tension between herself and Clarke, had made it nearly impossible for the commander to silence her thoughts. When Lea finally opened her eyes, she could already feel the foreboding signs of an impending headache. Marie still slept peacefully, cuddled tightly to her side and Lexa lightly let her fingers trail over her back.

She turned her head slightly and looked at Anya, the general was already awake and seemed to have watched Marie, for how long, Lexa could not tell.

“I hate to say it, but she slept much better this way” Anya surmised with a sigh under her breath. She had known before that she would regret having agreed to sleep in the commander’s quarters last night, but seeing now how much it had apparently helped Marie, it would be even harder to deny her from now on.

Lexa inclined her head in mute agreement, she had surmised the same already. She had had to calm Marie more often when the girl had come over to her and Clarke previously. The impending war was never too far from her mind these days and Lexa was aware that Marie only had a few short days left to recover from her time with Nia. They should try anything possible to aid her as best as possible and if this sleeping arrangement helped her in such a fashion, Lexa would not deny her simply for the sake of etiquette. Titus would surely have to say a lot about it, but as commander she would have the final say of course, Titus be damned.

Anya did not need her previous second to actually voice her thoughts, she could read them in her eyes easily enough. She huffed in light annoyance, if Lexa had already decided she knew that she would not need to argue with her. Still, Lexa should probably speak with Clarke before proclaiming to Marie that they could potentially move back into the commander’s quarters for the time being.

“You are going to spoil her rotten” she commented over her shoulder, as Anya rolled into a sitting position, stretching her arms high over her head to align her back again.

Lexa huffed under her breath, but she did not outright deny her previous mentor’s assessment either. She let her fingers continue their light caress and a slight smile ghosted over her lips, when Marie sighed in obvious contentment. “Is that such a problem?” she answered after a moment of silence.

Anya snorted with a shake of her head, but her expression softened visibly as she looked back down on Marie. She would have readily disagreed with Lexa weeks ago, but somehow, she could not find it in her to disagree now. “If we are to truly be more of mother figures to her, certainly not” Anya agreed in a breathy tone and a slight frown on her features after another moment of contemplation.

The general was still not certain how this was supposed to work out. She had more than enough experience in training a child as a second, but she had none experience with being a mother. She did not even have the possibility to look back onto her own mother. Anya barely had any memories left of her own family. Her parents had died when she had still been young and the village where she had been born in had more or less raised her, until she had been chosen as a second herself. Even though Anya was sure that she was much softer with Marie already than she had ever been with Lexa or Tris, Anya feared that she would never be soft enough to qualify for the term of a mother. She still could not fully understand how Marie had been able to connect with her like this, she had certainly not done anything to promote it in the beginning.

“Is Ontari still sleeping?” Lexa asked in a low tone, pulling the general from her thoughts.

Anya looked over to the couch. The nightblood’s eyes were still closed and her face looked relaxed, she watched her for a moment and could not detect any signs that she could be pretending to sleep. She inclined her head in agreement and sat back down on the edge of the bed, sensing that Lexa had something longer to tell to her.

Lexa was fairly certain that Marie would remain asleep as well if she kept up her soothing motion. She lowly told the general what Ontari had entrusted her with last night.

Anger flashed over Anya’s features, before Lexa could finish and she quickly grabbed one of the general’s wrists to stop the woman, before she could violently wake the nightblood girl. “Don’t!” Lexa hissed at the older woman “Let me finish before you judge her”.

Anya narrowed her eyes at her previous second, glaring down at the hand encasing her wrist, but she ceased her movement and settled back on the bed, willing to at least hear her out. Still, her thoughts circled around the nightblood girl, she had been fairly certain that their tentative bond was developing slowly and she had been ready to trust the Ice Nation girl. It angered her, that her trust seemed to have been misplaced.

Ontari woke abruptly to the sound of hushed words. She kept as still as possible, as she strained her hearing. The voices did not sound like Marie, the girl tended to talk too loudly. She heard rustling sounds and expected that the commander and general might be getting up, and she wanted to get up as well, when she heard the commander’s hissed words. She frowned slightly before she concluded that both women were speaking about her. Her frown deepened, but she kept her breathing even, not trying to garner their attention. Ontari wanted to hear what the commander would say about her. She was slightly annoyed that the commander was repeating what she had said to the general. If she had wanted the woman to know, she would have told her in person. But otherwise should she probably not be surprised by this at all.

Lexa shook her head vehemently, but she loosened her grip on the general’s wrist. “As I see it, Ontari not acting on her chance and in fact even going so far to tell me afterwards says a lot. I doubt she has ever felt guilty in such a fashion” Lexa said.

Anya raised a brow at the brunette “So, you do not find it alarming in the slightest that she in fact did think about murdering you?”. The general’s tone dripped with sarcasm and her brown eyes were glinting angrily.

Lexa huffed slightly and rolled her eyes at her former mentor “Think about what coming here and telling me that means, will you?” she asked the other woman, impatience creeping into her tone.

Anya’s lips thinned, but she contemplated Lexa’s words in silence for a moment. Her gaze travelled over to the couch minutely, before it returned to Marie and her features softened noticeably. She sighed under her breath “Ontari’s opinions must have changed drastically then” Anya acknowledged begrudgingly “I doubt she would have had any second thoughts to murder you and the conclave at her arrival in Polis”.

“She has” Lexa agreed with a slight grimace. She rarely thought about what could have come to pass. In retrospect she had to agree with Gustus, without her the coalition would crumble to dust in only a few days, none of her nightbloods would manage to keep the clans together under one flag. She hoped that days would come where the coalition was stable and she did not have to fear her legacy being destroyed in case of her death.

Her fingers continued to lightly caress Marie’s back “But so have we” Lexa added, voice even lower now.

Anya inclined her head as a slight frown settled on her features. She had just opened her mouth to retort something, when Marie stretched and blinked her eyes open sleepily.

The girl yawned deeply, before she smiled up at Lexa. She snuggled slightly closer to the woman and peered up at her through her lashes “Morning, Mommy” she mumbled, half hiding her face against Lexa’s chest.

Anya blinked down at the girl, mouth slightly opened in surprise. A sudden surge of jealousy coursed through her mind. Marie had not yet addressed her in such a form, but Lexa did not seem caught completely off guard, which led her to believe that Marie had in fact already used the term previously.

“Slept well, little star?” Lexa asked, green eyes shining and the hint of a tease in her tone.

Marie nodded, her smile brightening “Better than ever” she commented chirpily.

Anya frowned, when she heard what sounded like a sharp intake of breath from Ontari. She stood from the bed abruptly, suddenly annoyed with the whole situation. She felt irritated that Ontari had obviously listened in on their conversation and that Marie had not yet said a single thing to her, yet practically confessed her love to Lexa already. She stalked off into the bathroom with quick angry strides, letting the door fall shut behind herself loudly.

Marie’s smile fell visibly and her brows creased “Is Anya not feeling well?” she asked, voice tinted with worry.

Lexa sighed under her breath and gave the girl an encouraging smile “Do not think anything of it” she advised “Breakfast will be served soon” she added, urging the girl to entangle herself from her form.

Marie pouted visibly and tightened her grip on the commander’s shirt “Not yet” she exclaimed “Just a little longer?” she added in an innocent tone.

Lexa’s eyes showed her amusement at the girl’s clingy antics. It was heartening to see the child acting like this again. “Just a moment” she agreed after a beat of silence.

Marie smiled brightly and sighed in contentment.

Lexa laughed lightly when she noticed that the girl’s eyes were already drooping close again short moments later. Giving in to an inner flash of mirth, Lexa let her fingers which had previously caressed the girl’s back, travel to her sides and began to tickle the child lightly.

Marie squirmed immediately under the ministrations, laughter bright and her shrieks shrill. “Stop!” she shrieked “Stop, please!”.

The girl tried to wiggle herself out of the commander’s reach, but Lexa lightly held onto the child’s form.

“Get up then” Lexa paused for a moment and let Marie catch her breath. But the girl did not show any indication on actually wanting to leave the bed, so Lexa tickled her again.

A series of loudly ringing laughs escaped the girl’s lips and she leapt from the bed when Anya returned from the bathroom a moment later.

The general’s annoyed expression softened only slightly when Marie quickly jumped behind her, taking hold of her hip as if to hide behind her.

Lexa followed the girl with her lips tilted into a full-blown smile “You think Anya is going to protect you?” she asked Marie.

Marie peered up behind Anya and nodded with a toothy smile “She has to as my Mama” she reasoned in a matter of fact manner.

Anya blinked at Lexa with an almost owlish expression, clearly caught completely off-guard at the girl’s off-hand usage of the term. Lexa smiled reassuringly at the older woman, seeing that something had calmed in Anya.

 “So, I have to?” the general asked as she twisted around to face the child and her brown eyes twinkled cheerfully, as she bent down slightly and also attacked the girl with a tickle.

Marie shrieked loudly in surprise, backing off still laughing fully and actually running around the two women, coming to a halt beside Ontari, who had given up all pretence of sleeping and had sat up on the couch.

The Ice Nation nightblood felt absolutely uncomfortable in the whole situation. She had known already how deep the connection between Marie and the two women was, but hearing the child calling them as her mothers like this, was a new level even for them and she was baffled by it, unsure what to make of the change. Although she had been present at the initial conversation where Marie had asked both women to be allowed to call them that, she had never actually heard her use it until now.

“Ontari can protect me then” Marie proclaimed absolutely confident.

“Keep me out of that” Ontari immediately retorted with a raised brow.

Marie huffed, but before she could argue with Ontari, Anya shook her head, still smiling, and sent the girl into the bathroom to get ready for the day.

 

 

Chapter 206

“How does your shoulder feel?” Anya asked, turning from Lexa towards Ontari. Although she could clearly see how uncomfortable the Ice Nation nightblood was at the moment, she completely ignored the girl’s discomfort.

Ontari’s dark eyes narrowed at the general, the fact that the woman seemed genuinely interested in her health like that was rattling. The injury was nothing life-threatening, she was sure that she could train with it already, if she had to.

Anya’s lips thinned in irritation and Ontari quickly mumbled “Hurts…”, rolling her eyes subtly.

“A healer can provide you with something against the pain” Anya assured the nightblood easily, combing her hair and beginning to braid it as well.

Lexa watched the exchange between her former mentor and Ontari in silence, it was obvious that the girl still had difficulties to understand and accept the general’s care, but she knew that Anya would not neglect her obligation to the girl because of that. She highly doubted that their relationship would ever grow into something even remotely as deep as what the both of them shared with Marie, but it seemed to work out much better than Lexa had anticipated beforehand. She would not have believed that the Ice Nation nightblood could truly benefit from a more personal tutelage, but the effects were already beginning to show.

Ontari still remained somewhat stiff and guarded now and Lexa internally wondered if her own presence was the only cause, but she doubted that the girl’s reaction would have been vastly different within the general’s quarters.

Marie returned to them short moments later, the girl had given up on trying to braid her own hair, so it hung loosely around her face now, a few locks obscuring her view and gentling her sharpened features. Although the emotional exertion of the previous day still showed in her face, a smile lingered on her lips and happiness showed in her grey eyes.

Anya motioned Ontari mutely to go into the bathroom now.

The nightblood followed the general’s silent order without hesitation, until she spotted the general following her and she stopped in her tracks, twisting around slightly to face the woman “I do not…” she began to argue, voice already raised slightly in apparent anger.

Anya’s jaw clenched in growing irritation and her brown eyes blazed slightly “Just go into the bathroom!” she seethed at the stubborn girl through clenched teeth. She did not know why the girl was being so difficult right now; Ontari had not even been able to get off her own boots last night, so Anya could not fathom how the girl intended to wash herself now without any kind of assistance. They of course could call in a healer or even handmaid to assist the girl in her stead, but she preferred to personally help her charge.

Ontari internally contemplated the likelihood of her convincing the general that she could fend for herself, but the Trikru woman already looked irate enough as it was and she highly doubted that she would win this argument. She did not understand why the woman seemed so insisting to offer her actual help now, no one had cared for her in such a fashion before and it was slightly unnerving to her to be confronted with it now. After a moment of mute contemplation, she huffed and accepted that she would not be able to discourage the general and would have to accept her help for now. For Marie accepting this form of help seemed natural and the younger girl did not even seem to contemplate the meaning behind it, but Ontari still found it difficult to truly trust the general like this.

While Marie frowned at the older girl, confused why Ontari was putting up a fight about something like that at all, Lexa smirked slightly.

The commander could perfectly sympathise with the nightblood girl and it was obvious that the relationship between the general and her charge would remain strained in this sense for some time to come. She highly doubted that Ontari would ever truly accept the general’s new role in her life and Lexa understood that it would be difficult to accept a first at such a late stage of her training, the girl had undoubtedly learned the hard way to only trust in herself and giving up some of her indecency like that forced the nightblood girl to surrender a certain amount of power over her own person to Anya. It would certainly continue to be a back and forth between the two, until they had truly gotten used to each other. 

“When will breakfast be delivered?” Marie asked, voice chirpy; she had not had the stomach to eat much yesterday, but she was rather hungry now.

Lexa looked down at the blonde child, tearing her gaze from the door to the bathroom “It cannot be long now" she assured kindly. She was slightly surprised by the girl's good mood, after the vigil yesterday and Nymo still on the brink of death, she had expected Marie to be downtrodden, but she seemed to have taken everything surprisingly well. In the back of her mind Lexa feared how the girl would react when Nymo truly died and Marie had a few hours to contemplate what had happened the last days, she hoped that the child would not suffer from another setback and resort to hurt herself again in the process, all of them would need to keep a closer eye on Marie for the time being.

Having to put four of her nightblood children to rest, setting free their souls, pained Lexa deeply. She felt that she had failed them still. Before her, no commander had truly had any connection to the nightblood generation following afterwards. Lexa thought she would not have felt their loss so keenly, if she also had not seen them grow up under her tutelage. She could almost fathom now, why her predecessors had preferred not to get into close contact with the nightblood generation following them.

The fact that there had not been any kind of news on Nymo's condition yet, was both a blessing and a curse. If the medication had helped him and he had recovered, a messenger would surely have told them so already. But there neither had been any word of his death yet, which meant that the nightblood boy was still fighting for his survival, Lexa could only hope now that he would be strong enough and pull through. The rational part of her mind had already accepted that Nymo would soon join his deceased brothers and sisters.

The thought of the wounded nightblood boy reminded Lexa sharply of the fact that she still needed to organize a part of the troops to take out the clan-less bandits. She looked down at Marie contemplatively, wondering if it would do the girl some good to acquire more fighting experience on a battlefield before their real war with Azgeda would begin. The girl’s self-inflicted wounds were healing nicely, but Clarke was insistent that Marie should not train just yet. Lexa was sure that Anya would gladly take up the chance to leave the capitol and get back onto a battle field, she knew how antsy the general got, stuck in the capitol and only the fighting pits as an outlet.

“Can I braid your hair again?” Marie asked, glancing up at the commander with big hopeful eyes, pulling the woman from her thoughts.

Lexa smiled at the child good-naturedly, her hair did not really require for a replacement of the braids and Alira would surely be able to get the task done quicker and more efficiently, but it was clear that Marie took great joy in being allowed to braid her hair and Lexa so no harm in indulging the child either, so she nodded in mute agreement.

Marie let out a clear sound of delight and she eagerly waited, comb already in her hand, for Lexa to sit down and immediately began her task.

A few moments passed in peaceful silence between them. Lexa had closed her eyes and simply let Marie tend to her hair, planning ahead of what she had to do today. She absentmindedly remembered that Anya had mentioned Marie's wish to have the opportunity to see Roan again.

“Lexa...” Marie's low voice pulled her out of her thoughts again, the child had spoken hesitantly and Lexa waited for her to voice what she wanted.

When a few moments passed without Marie saying anything, Lexa asked softly, eyes still closed “What is it?”

“You do not mind...” Marie began to voice her question, but stopped again, biting at her lips in hesitation.

Lexa twisted slightly, so that she could look at the child, the girl had paused in her task of braiding her hair and her grey eyes had a look of insecurity in them. “I do not mind what?” she inquired, voice a little more forceful now, while her expression remained kind and calm.

“That I called you Mommy...” Marie breathed out, fumbling with the comb in her fingers instead of looking at the commander in a clearly nervous gesture.

Lexa smiled gently at the child and thought that fiddling with a comb was an improvement compared to scratching at her own hands and she raised Marie’s chin to reconnect their eyes “I have told you before that I will be honoured for you to think of me as a mother figure…” she reassured the girl again.

Marie’s smile was a little wobbly, insecurities still visibly clinging to her features, so Lexa added after a short hesitation “…as I see you as a daughter to me” the commander felt her own heart beat a little faster at the admission, which had fallen from her lips. She may have already thought exactly in this fashion of the girl in the privacy of her mind, but voicing the words out loud somehow felt different, important, freeing and dangerous at the same time.

Marie blinked at Lexa for a moment, expression dumbstruck, while she heard the commander's last words replaying in her ears. After a short moment, Marie’s face was brightened by a blinding smile and she immediately threw her arms around Lexa’s neck. “Love you, Mommy" she repeated her words, mumbled into the crook of Lexa's throat.

Lexa tightened her arms around the girl's smaller body, allowing herself a small moment just to enjoy their connection. She had never dared to dream to ever be gifted with something so precious and pure as the unconditional love of a child.

She had of course felt connected to the nightblood children and all of them had a special place in her heart, but it was different with them. She had never allowed herself to forget, even for a little moment, that these children were in Polis to be trained as her successor, doomed to have to face their siblings in the conclave, killing each other until only the next commander remained.

The love she now felt flowing through her whole being, body and soul, for Marie was different, more encompassing and Lexa even felt slightly frightened by the strength of her own feelings. She could not completely ban the teachings of “love is weakness” from her mind, no matter how hard she tried. But Lexa was unwilling to accept now that she had to be alone to remain strong, she was not naive enough anymore to think that she was not weakened by her love, because she knew that she would go to a great length to protect the girl from harm, but she had to believe that there was a strength in this as well.

Marie backed out of their embrace long moments later, loud footsteps resonated outside of the doors to the commander’s chambers.

The girl’s cheeks visibly glistened with the silvery tracks of her tears and Lexa hoped that the girl had cried out of joy or had been overwhelmed by her feelings. She gave the girl another smile, as she quickly wiped the signs of her tears from the child’s features.

Only the beat of a moment passed, before the door was opened and Alira stepped inside, carrying breakfast.

The handmaid greeted the commander respectfully and she smiled lightly at the child “I see that you have already begun with my work” she commented, placing the tray filled with a wide variety of food on one of the tables.

Marie smiled sheepishly at the handmaid “I can open them again…” she offered, her voice still a little breathy from just having cried.

Alira shook her head, stepping around the commander, who remained sitting on the stole with a slight smirk on her lips. It was obvious that the handmaid was indulging the girl with her antics and Lexa was grateful for it. “You need to pull a little tighter on the hair, to make the braids slightly smaller” Alira assessed, inspecting the child’s work carefully “The braids will also hold longer that way”.

Marie nodded eagerly, absorbing the information immediately with curious grey eyes. She watched intently when Alira did open one particularly lose braid, showing her slowly on how to perfect it, before the handmaid quickly put the finishing touches to the commander’s hairs.

Lexa mutely motioned Marie to sit down as well, once her hair was finished and Alira mutely began to work on the girl’s hair. Marie was not practised enough in braiding to get the braids to hold in her shortened hair and she could not comfortably rise her hands this high anyway. She pushed the tea for Marie in the child’s direction and kept a stern face, when the girl immediately began to protest.

Marie scowled lightly, glaring at the mug in her hand, but began to drink the brew a moment later anyway.

Anya and Ontari joined them a moment later, while Alira went around the room, collecting clothes to be washed and rearranging the furs and pillows on the commander’s bed.

“Drink the damned tea!” Anya immediately reprimanded the girl in a sharp tone, she had already had to argue with the girl about the tea the previous few meals and her patience was running out on the subject.

Marie winced slightly at the reprimand and gulped down the rest of the brew quickly and in complete silence, putting the empty mug down a little too forceful and almost provocatively pushing it into Anya’s direction.

Ontari kept her gaze locked on her own plate of food. It was obvious that the general’s mood was already strained and she could only guess that the commander’s nerves were bound to be frayed as well. She would have advised Marie to behave herself now, but it seemed the girl’s mood was shifting and she was not sitting closely enough to signal her subtly, without alerting the two women as well.

“Cease your attitude right this instance” Anya ordered, teeth clenched and irritation with the girl rising. 

Marie’s lips thinned and defiance flashed through her grey eyes “I don’t have an attitude” she retorted sulkily.

“Marie…” it was Lexa who silenced the girl quickly and although her single word had been delivered in a calm tone, her expression was strict and warning.

Marie pouted visibly, but returned her attention to her own breakfast instead.

Anya opened her mouth to reprimand the child for starting once again by eating her honey cake, but closed it again, shaking her head mutely instead.

“Is there any word on Nymo’s condition yet?” Lexa disrupted the sudden tension at the table, addressing Alira.

The handmaid visibly faltered for a moment, before she turned to the commander. “I have seen Wanheda tending to him a candle mark ago” she reported “It did not seem as if the Skykru medicine was helping him…” her words trailed off heavily and the woman’s features were drawn in compassion for the nightblood boy.

Lexa sighed under her breath, shoulders sagging just a little bit, as she inclined her head. She had feared already that Clarke would not be able to save the boy’s life and she knew that she could already prepare herself mentally for the confrontation that was bound to happen between them, once Nymo had died.

Marie looked crestfallen at the woman’s words and her lower lip visibly trembled.

Ontari would have liked to reach out and physically comfort the younger girl, she internally wondered if the own compassion she felt for the boy’s impending death was solely due to Marie’s sorrow.

The rest of the breakfast passed in a rather oppressing silence and Ontari was almost glad when the general proclaimed that she and Marie were to accompany her back to the training pits where Talia would be waiting to continue their lesson in the language of the scouts.

Lexa had scheduled another meeting with the ambassadors, finalizing some part of the plans to finally march the army into the north. In the last days most of the army had arrived in the capitol and only a very few numbers of delegations were still missing and were expected to arrive in a week the latest, probably earlier still.

Now that Titus had returned to Polis, she would also still need to arrange the finer details of how the flamekeeper was supposed to rule the coalition in her stead until she returned. They would not need to speak about the possibility of her never returning to the capitol, the flamekeeper had served four of her predecessors and new better than everyone else what needed to happen then. Lexa dearly hoped that there would not need to be a conclave soon and she would need to speak with the flamekeeper of sending out more scouts to search for more nightblood children as well.

Marie only begrudgingly followed Anya out of the commander’s quarters. She had of course sensed that Anya’s mood was still rather bleak and she did not feel like having another lesson with Talia. She would have liked nothing better than to simply stay with Lexa, preferably inside of the commander’s rooms, curled into an armchair together and listening to the woman read something to her. Her own mood improved ten-fold, when they encountered Risha on the way down to the basement of the tower.

The wolf had left the commander’s quarters very early in the morning and had not returned until now.

Marie smiled at Risha and the wolf immediately trailed around her legs, tail wagging in greeting.

Ontari still did not appear completely comfortable to be in close proximity to the wolf, but her dark eyes had a fond shine to them, as she watched Marie and Risha interact.

Anya impatiently told both girls to finally follow her out of the tower and led them towards the fighting pits.

More warriors had arrived in the capitol during the last three days and the streets were almost bursting with the different people.

Marie’s smile faltered visibly at the sight of the crowd and she stepped as close to Anya as possible, feeling her heart rate pick up frantically. She breathed more easily, when she felt one of Anya’s hands on the small of her back, resting there reassuringly. She sensed Ontari also walking closer to her other side and she gave the nightblood a fleeting grateful smile for the gesture.

The sight of all the different warriors filling Polis to its limit reminded Marie somehow of the army’s camp before they had marched against Mount Weather. Although she had no known for weeks that Lexa prepared a war against Ice Nation, seeing the army assembled now, really made the realization sink into her mind. “The army will be ready to leave Polis soon, right?” she addressed Anya, grey eyes a little widened and voice hesitant. Marie knew that she would be accompanying Lexa and Anya and that Ontari would also come with them and she had known so for weeks as well. The prospect of having to potentially face the queen again made the blood freeze to ice in her veins and breathing quickened again as panic began to take hold of her mind.

Anya looked on in alarm, how Marie suddenly faltered in her steps. The girl’s complexion turned deathly pale in the blink of an eye and she easily recognized the horror passing through the child’s mind. She did not even have the opportunity to answer Marie’s original question, before her panic had begun.

Anya frowned in worry, fearing what would be happening on a battle field, if the mere thought of the war against Azgeda elicited such panic in the girl.

Ontari had stopped beside Marie as well, dark eyes worried and hands hovering in front of the girl, obviously afraid that touching her now, would only worsen the girl’s panic.

Anya pulled the panicked girl from the centre of the road, removing her from the complete focus of the crowd. They had not gathered too much attention yet, but they would, if Marie’s panic got out of hand.

Marie struggled lightly against the hands on her shoulder, her gaze had become clouded with black dancing dots and a loud rushing sound in her ears blocked out all other noises from her surrounding, she quickly forgot where she was at all.

Anya easily pulled the girl into an embrace a second later, pressing her smaller body against herself tightly and she felt Marie’s feeble struggle fade quickly. She tried to sooth the child with her words, instructing her lowly to follow her breathing.

It took long moments until Marie’s body truly relaxed again and she gasped loudly, as if resurfacing from a water surface. Her grey eyes were wide and flitted quickly between Anya and Ontari. “I am sorry…” she immediately apologized, voice still shaking noticeably.

“It is alright” Anya reassured the girl in a soft tone, letting go of the child a moment later as she stood up again. Her brown eyes stayed on the child the whole time, hoping that Marie was truly alright again. She suppressed a grimace at the thought that Marie obviously now did have huge problems with facing a crowd without falling into panic. “You do not need to be afraid” she tried to reassure Marie who still seemed visibly shaken “Ontari and I will surely not let anyone harm you here” she added after a second.

Marie frowned slightly, brows knitting together “It was not about that” she defended quickly and her voice took on a desperate tone as she added “…how am I to face the queen like this?”

 

Chapter 207

Anya looked down at the girl, gaze filled with sadness for a second, before she steeled herself. Pitying the child would not help either of them, but all of them would make sure that Nia would never again be able to touch a single hair on Marie’s head.

She crouched down in front of the girl and her brown eyes burned with a fiery protectiveness as she firmly grasped onto Marie’s shoulders “Nia will not hurt you again” Anya promised, tone strong and convinced, she would rather die protecting the girl than watching her suffer like this again.

Marie’s expression still looked doubtful, but she nodded. Her smile was shaky at best as she met Ontari’s dark eyes over Anya’s shoulder as well. She stiffened visibly when she noticed that people were already stopping in their paths, watching them from afar.

“Can we go?” she asked hesitantly, voice low and grey eyes darting through the crowd quickly.

Anya pursed her lips lightly, she knew that now was neither the time nor the place to have this kind of talk with the girl, so she inclined her head, standing up again. She motioned Marie to walk ahead of her, keeping one hand on the child’s back reassuringly, while her other casually rested on the hilt of her sword. Although Anya highly doubted that anyone would dare to attack Marie or Ontari in her presence, she knew well enough that the tension in a crowd could shift in a moment’s notice.

Ontari walked directly next to Marie, keeping her injured child to the younger girl and away from the crowd. She would not admit it, but she was not blind to the hateful gazes of most of the warriors and she was aware that she was in no state of health to defend herself efficiently. The scars etched into the skin on her face pointed out her origin for everyone plain to see and Ontari was not truly convinced that the commander’s protection alone would quell the warriors’ rightful anger against Ice Nation and keep her safe.

“Nia will not survive this war” the nightblood girl proclaimed lowly to Marie under her breath, keeping her dark eyes looking ahead of them.

Marie shivered lightly at the older girl’s words, her voice had sounded dark and absolutely certain. She wondered for a moment if Ontari would even kill the queen herself if she got the chance. She did not care to imagine what she would do when she truly stood in front of the queen again. Marie shuddered in fright, she could almost feel the queen’s piercing gaze raking over her body again.

Marie slowed her pace even further, startling Anya in the process, so that she was now walking between Anya and Ontari and she quickly grasped onto the general’s hand. Risha whined lowly, pressing herself against Marie’s legs as well.

Ontari bit back a hiss of pain when Marie bumped into her injured shoulder and she pressed her lips together tightly for a moment, breathing out strongly.

Marie frowned in confusion, when she noticed that a huge part of the warriors was now moving in their opposite direction. “The army is not going to leave already, right?” she asked over her shoulder towards Anya, voice quivering slightly.

The general shook her head in the negative. Lexa would have told her that already and preparations would have been made ahead for them as well. She felt Marie’s fingers tightening almost painfully around her own, but she did not try to pry them from her hand either, instead continuing their way towards the training pits.

The warriors of her unit were already there, occupied with combat training. Anya left both of her charges at the edge of the training pits with the sharp order to remain where they were. She could see Talia already breaking away from her fighting partner and making her way over to the girls. The general nodded to the female warrior on her way, taking up Talia’s abandoned place, rolling her shoulders lightly.

Marie sat down closely to Ontari, so close that their legs were already touching each other. Her mind was not really into the lesson Talia was trying to instil in them, her focus strayed every few moments again.

It was obvious that the war was going to start in a few days and she was honestly deeply afraid of having to be a part of it. Marie doubted that she would feel saver left behind in the capitol though, she would worry nonstop that Lexa, Anya or Ontari might not be returning again.

But the mere thought of having to face the queen again, made her heart stop beating momentarily in her chest and her breathing stuck in her throat. She did not doubt that all three of them would protect her against the queen, but it would be foolish to assume that she would truly be protected. She remembered Lexa telling Clarke before the Mountain that plans did rarely last long in battle, so no matter how carefully they would plan, there was no way pf predicting the future.

Marie’s thoughts strayed to Nymo and she felt her chest contract painfully. She was sitting here outside of the tower, while her friend was battling for his life inside.

Ontari tried to pay attention what Talia was trying to teach to them. Marie seemed to have a better talent at grasping this kind of language skill and she still somehow doubted that she would ever be truly needing it at all. The younger girl seemed far away with her thoughts now and also Ontari was convinced that Talia had noticed that fact as well, the warrior seemed to focus her attention on herself instead.

Marie wondered what would happen if she indeed managed to try to heal Nymo. She knew that there was no way of telling ahead if she would be able to or not, she had not been able to heal Clarke after all. She was certain that both Anya and Lexa would be incredibly angry with her, if she sneaked away and tried to use her power. The boy’s injury was well known, so she would not be able to explain how his hand had suddenly healed, if she succeeded. Internally she mused what might happen, when more people learned of her talent.

She would like to tell Ontari about it, trying to gauge her reaction and by thus how others might react. She wondered if the older girl’s reaction might have been different months ago. She remembered Anya’s and Lexa’s almost harsh denial for her to tell anyone else. She trusted Ontari and she knew without a doubt that the older girl would not do anything to hurt her.

She remembered about the injured horse as well. Marie pursed her lips, she had not used her talent in some time and wondered if she would be able to at all. Maybe she just needed some practise. They did not know a lot about her talent, how it worked, if it had restrictions or what Lexa seemed to fear, repercussions for herself in the long run.

Marie was fairly certain that Anya would not let her leave out of her sight at the moment and although Ontari had no idea what really was going on, she could feel her dark eyes flitting over to herself every few seconds.

“Marie, are you listening at all?” Talia interrupted her thoughts abruptly.

Marie looked up at the warrior, startled out of her internal musing. She lowered her eyes with a slight blush on her cheeks and she nodded minutely in agreement. She let her fingers card through Risha’s fur. The wolf was lying at her other side.

She tried to keep her focus on the lesson from now on, but she found it particularly hard. Her thoughts kept on returning to Nymo, the wounded horse and the Ice queen.

~ ~ ~

When Talia stood up again, some time later, ending the lesson, when Anya returned to their side.

The general’s breathing was elated and sweat dripped down her face visibly. She had learned from another warrior that Lexa had given the order to sent a few troops to the place where the conclave had been attacked, extinguishing the bandits once and for all. She would have liked to be part of one of the troops, but she also doubted that separating from Marie and Ontari at this moment, would be a good idea either and neither of her charges was in the physical condition yet to go onto a battle field.

It would take a few more days before they would be able to leave the capitol and she hoped that Ontari’s shoulder would heal enough in that time or riding would be highly uncomfortable for the nightblood girl. Marie’s physical injuries were not severe, it was rather the question if the girl would be able to mentally withstand what had happened.

“Can I go to the stables?” Marie asked, grey eyes innocent, looking up at Anya with an easy expression. She did not know if the general would let her go unsupervised and she also did not know if she would be alone inside, but maybe she was and could so try to heal the horse. It must be hard for such a creature to suffer from a broken leg, she somehow doubted that the animal would really understand that the people were just trying to help it.

Anya pursed her lips, she wanted to return to the tower, get cleaned up and bring both of her charges back inside as well. The girl had not been at the stables for some time now, so she was not truly surprised that Marie would ask to be allowed to go again.

She had opened her mouth to answer, when a messenger hurried to them. “The commander summons you to her chambers” the young man relayed quickly, not even waiting for a moment for an answer.

Anya frowned as she looked behind the retreating messenger, wondering what had happened. She had a gnawing suspicion and she hoped to be proven wrong.

“What is going on?” Marie questioned, forgetting about her request to go to the stables for now and her grey eyes were worried as she gazed up at the general. Risha pressed a little closer to her human, feeling the girl’s rising agitation.

“I do not know” Anya retorted curtly, carelessly wiping the sweat from her forehead with her sleeve “Come” she addressed both girls likewise, motioning them in the direction of the tower.

Ontari quickly got to her feet, hissing lightly, when she nearly lost her balance and only the general grasping onto her arm kept her from falling over completely. She grimaced at the rippling pain the motion caused beneath the bandage on her shoulder. She desperately hoped that the stitches had not been ripped from her carelessness, she had no wish to have them done a third time.

Anya frowned slightly at the nightblood girl, the girl’s complexion had turned pale minutely, probably from the pain of her injury and she made a mental note, to sent the girl to a healer later. If the girl’s injury did not begin to heal in the next days, she could not responsibly agree to Ontari being part of the army as well.

The way towards the tower passed in silence, Anya did not make a comment when Marie took hold of one of her hands again. She wondered why the girl was acting like this all of a sudden, but she would not deny Marie the small comfort the contact obviously brought to her. When she officially claimed the child as her daughter, there would be no sense in pretending not to be close to her anyway.

They could hear shouts coming from the commander’s quarters already, when they stepped from the elevator on the top of the tower.

Ontari had unobtrusively tried to reach a hand around and brought her fingers to the bandage beneath her shirt, she cussed lightly under breath, when they came back lightly tainted black from fresh blood.

Anya caught the girl’s movements from the corner of her eyes and her eyes narrowed “You seek out a healer immediately” she directed in a sharp tone. She could already recognize the raised voice as belonging to Clarke, so another healer would take care of Ontari.

Marie’s brows were furrowed as her gaze flitted between Ontari and the door to Lexa’s quarters, she was torn between wanting to stay with the older girl and finding out why Lexa and Clarke seemed to be fighting.

Anya had already connected what Clarke’s presence in the commander’s rooms meant, Nymo must have lost his fight and succumbed to his infection.

Ontari seemed to come to the same conclusion only a second later, as a shadow passed quickly over her features, she nodded towards the general, before she stepped back into the elevator, signalling her intent to be brought back down several levels. Before the doors closed, she gave Marie a little pained smile.

Anya put a hand lightly on Marie’s shoulder whose gaze had still been locked on the now closed elevator, motioning the girl to get moving again silently.

Gustus stood in front of the commander’s door with a clear displeased grimace on his face “Should have slit her throat already for her insolence…” he grumbled to Anya in passing, dark eyes shining angrily, before he opened the door for Anya and Marie.

Clarke and Lexa stood a few inches apart and while Lexa looked collected and calm, Clarke’s features were contorted with anger and grief.

“…all your fault!” the enraged blonde raged at Lexa, not even stopping her rant, which had been ongoing for some time already, when she sensed that they were not alone in the room any longer. “You have just let him die!” she shouted at the commander “A boy, you were sworn to protect as your possible successor and you just stood back and watched him die!”

Lexa’s jaw was clenched and her teeth ground together visibly. She was trying hard to hold on to her composure. To hear the news of Nymo’s death had been a harsh blow, she had already mentally prepared herself for it, but it had hurt nevertheless.

“Clarke!” Anya addressed the blonde healer in a sharp tone, wanting to prompt the girl to stop in her rant and to calm down. Words spoken in anger were mostly those you regretted later, once your head had cleared, but they would have already caused the hurt they had been supposed to. It did not seem as if Lexa was planning to put a stop to Clarke’s rant either, her previous second’s expression showed slightly how troubled she was. It would not take much more for Clarke to push Lexa too far. To her great irritation, Lexa held up her hand, stopping her protest.

Clarke’s eyes shortly fell on Marie, before she looked back at Lexa, hands balled to angry fists at her side “I can understand your wish to keep her save” she seethed “But you elevated her life about everyone else’s. Did you not say love is weakness?” Clarke said bitterly. She was convinced that Marie would have somehow have been able to help the boy, she had to believe that and Lexa would have surely managed to keep the child safe regardless.

Marie’s eyes widened at Clarke’s words, she knew that all three women had previously agreed that it was saver to not even let her try to heal Nymo and she looked between Anya and Lexa, desperately waiting for one of them to say something. Her words had felt like a sort of slap, she truly understood now that Nymo was dead and she had not even had the chance to try and heal him. She would never know now, if she could have at all.

Anya’s hands balled to angry fists at her side and a low growl seemed to emit from her, only Lexa’s apparent wish not to intervene held the general in her place now.

Lexa’s green eyes flashed dangerously for a second “Are you not trying to convince me of the opposite?” she retorted, tone tinted with exhaustion. She had already feared that Nymo would not survive, but she had now officially lost five nightbloods in the span of only a few days. Only three nightbloods were alive now to fight in a conclave, if it happened soon, the other three still too young to compete. Clarke’s words had struck a chord, she had sworn to protect them and she had failed miserably at it.

Clarke seemed oblivious to the pain her words had caused in the commander. Marie wondered internally if the blonde might not have noticed and was rather seeking to only deepen it right now in her own sorrow.

Clarke stepped even closer to Lexa, physically pushing at her shoulders with an angry scowl on her features.

Anya gritted her teeth when Lexa immediately subtly shook her head, telling her mutely to stay back and not to interfere on her behalf, as she stumbled back lightly from Clarke.

Clarke only followed her and pushed her again, as the first tears ran down her face. “You have let him die! I could have saved him by taking off his hands, but you would rather stuck to tradition than save him, you have condemned him to death!” she repeated through clenched teeth and her blue eyes swam in tears and screamed of sorrow “Just like you would have let all of Skykru die in the Mountain” she added and a coldness infused her eyes “That is what you are good at, leaving others behind to die. You have not cared for Skykru and the alliance and you surely have not cared for the boy as well”.

Lexa appeared for a second as if Clarke had physically slapped her, hurt washed over her features to have the Mountain being hurled at her in this moment. It took the commander only the fraction of a second to pull herself back together and her expression hardened, while she stood prouder and taller again.

When Clarke, apparently only incensed further at Lexa’s quick recovery, tried to push at the other woman again, Lexa did not budge even a millimetre now.

Her green eyes did not even show a hint of her feelings any longer and her voice was deathly calm and cold “Get out!” she ordered “I have to prepare for the funeral rites”. She turned away from Clarke slightly and nodded towards Anya.

The general understood the silent order without any need for clarification and she stepped up next to Clarke, grasping on to one of her arms in a bruising grip and she internally hoped that her fingers would truly leave bruises behind and leading the blonde healer out of the commander’s chambers. Clarke struggled against her hold, but Anya was rather unimpressed with her efforts.

Marie watched both of them go with widened eyes, she was speechless for a moment with what Clarke had hurled at Lexa.

When she looked over at Lexa only a moment later, the woman’s façade was already crumbling.

Gone was the strong and expressionless mask, replaced with deep sorrow and hurt.

Marie felt her own throat constrict painfully as she hesitantly stepped closer to the woman. She remembered how she had hugged the commander after Sierra’s execution as well and even back then the commander had not rejected her comfort.

“Mommy…” she addressed the commander in a quivering tone “I am sorry…” she added after a second.

Lexa looked over at Marie immediately and she felt a tear slide down her own cheek, while she felt the girl step closer to her and her small arms wrapped tightly around her midriff.

“You have done nothing to apologize for” she proclaimed, voice thick and gruff. Clarke’s words kept on replaying in her mind. She had already feared that the woman would someday use what had happened at the Mountain against her, but hearing it like that, had been worse than any physical attack could have been.

Lexa let herself crouch down to her knees, so that she could properly embrace the child and she felt incredibly calmed by the girl’s warmth in her arms.

“I am sorry for your loss” Marie clarified after a moment of silence. Her own eyes had watered with unshed tears, when the realization sunk into her mind, that her friend had truly died.

Before Lexa could retort that Marie had also been close to Nymo, the girl added faintly “… I have not even tried to heal him” and her tone seemed heavy with guilt.

Lexa swallowed forcefully, regretting that her own decision was causing Marie to feel guilty now. “It is not possible to save everyone” she said solemnly after another moment of silence. She did not know right now how things between herself and Clarke would continue in the future, but she would not change her decision concerning Marie. Clarke may be right, she had chosen Marie’s safety over Nymo’s survival, but she would stop at nothing to protect her daughter.

 

 

Chapter 208

Anya physically dragged Clarke along, not paying the younger woman’s struggle any mind, her expression a dark scowl and her brown eyes were stormy. In her opinion, Clarke had definitely gone too far, she could understand a lingering grudge because of Lexa’s choice at the Mountain to a little extent, but using Marie in such a fashion in an argument and the love the commander held for the child was a strike below the belt and although Anya knew how forgiving Lexa was by nature, she doubted that her previous second would forgive and forget this fight so easily.

She pulled the younger woman into the elevator, bringing her down one level and into the room which had been originally assigned to the Skykru healer. Anya let the door fall shut behind them loudly with a banging sound and only then let go of Clarke’s arm, crossing her arms over her chest, before she could reach out and physically slap the girl for her insolent stupidity.

The difference in their size allowed Anya to efficiently tower over the blonde younger woman, staring her down in anger.

Clarke huffed angrily, her blue eyes blazing back at the general, clearly unfazed by her apparent anger.

“Do you have any inclination to what you have just done?” Anya seethed at Clarke. She could fathom how deeply the woman’s words must have hurt Lexa.

Clarke pursed her lips “I just gave Lexa a piece of my mind” she retorted, anger still coursing hotly through her veins. Her fingers were still stained black with the boy’s blood and she had been helpless to lower his fever. She had held Nymo’s uninjured hand all through the night, trying to calm him from his fevered dreams. She had been forced to do nothing on Lexa’s orders, having to sit back and watch the poor boy die had been somehow even harder than watching the Mountain Men die.

Anya raised a brow at the girl, unimpressed at her antics. “You are extremely lucky that Lexa apparently still cares if you live or die” she proclaimed, tone almost nonchalant. She was certain that Gustus would readily have helped her kill Clarke, not that she would have needed any actual help for that, the girl was still a pathetic fighter at best.

Clarke rolled her eyes “As if she cares…” she retorted, but the rest of her words died on her tongue, when Anya faced her fully, a glare on her face that promised a slow and most painful death.

“You are angry that the boy died” Anya assessed, teeth still clenched and internally wondering over the girl’s apparently never-ending stupidity “and you apparently still do not think before you open your mouth” she drawled. She had told the girl so before, she hoped that she would not have to do so again afterwards.

Clarke opened her mouth to retort something, but Anya stopped her before she could say more. “Silence!” Anya thundered angrily at the healer “Nymo would not have survived a conclave with only one hand. Only the physically strongest nightblood can rise to be commander, he would have been questioned on his strength constantly. You may have been able to give him a few years, but you can not know if an amputation might have even been able to save him at all. He was condemned to death as soon as his wound got infected”

Clarke’s breathing turned harder, as she glared at the general. “Then he could not have competed in the conclave, so what?” she retorted “He could have done something else!”

“No” Anya denied vehemently, brown eyes staring the girl down relentlessly “No nightblood cannot partake in the conclave who is old enough to fight. Only one survives and rises as the next commander. The day on which Lexa dies, would have ultimately been his death as well”.

Clarke swallowed once, a flash of the time the assassins had managed to nearly kill Lexa passing in front of her eyes momentarily. “Luna still lives” she retorted, trying almost stubbornly to hold onto her anger. She was convinced it was righteous, but she could feel it fading.

Anya shook her head, exasperation rising again “Luna still lives because Lexa allowed it” she spelled out in a raised tone “Titus regularly still tries to convince her to have Luna assassinated. A nightblood who is old enough to take over the throne, can mean a successful coup could be staged against the current commander, the danger is too great of that coming to pass, to allow one to survive, only to steer trouble later”.

Clarke pursed her lips and closed her eyes for a second, she could see that the general was still incredibly angry, her anger lingered in her clenched fingers and jaw, brown eyes glittering hard. She knew already how protective the general was of Lexa, it took her a moment to connect just in what exact context she had included Marie in their fight. Including the Mountain and using it to only deepening Lexa’s hurt with it, had surely not been her smartest move either. While Clarke mutely contemplated about what she had said, a grimace rested on her features.

“For someone who claims to love Lexa, you surely know how to hurt her the deepest” Anya commented, voice cold and eyes hard. It was obvious that the blonde woman was just now thinking about what she had said during the fight with Lexa.

Clarke winced visibly at the general’s words, realizing just how low her blows had been. Her lips thinned at the realization that Lexa had just taken everything in stride, she had pushed the woman as far as she could, but the commander had not retaliated neither physically nor verbally. She felt physically ill all of a sudden, she had royally fucked up and now that her anger had subsided mostly, she could recognize that as well.

“I am sorry…” she offered, a little meekly. Clarke was never too sure about her standing with the general and she was sure that the fight Anya had just been witness to, would have lost her a lot of standing with the Trikru woman.

“It is not me you have to apologize to” Anya retorted, expression still as hard as stone. When Clarke moved in the direction of the door, her arm shot out again, stopping the blonde woman in her movement. “No” she shook her head “Now is not the time. The funeral rites will take place shortly”.

Clarke deflated visibly, but she nodded in acknowledgement. She did not know if her presence would be welcomed at the funeral rites now or not.

Anya tightened her grip on Clarke’s arm for a moment and her brown eyes blazed threateningly “However, if you ever try to use Marie in such a form again or even consider making her talent public, not even Lexa will be able to save you then” she said in a deadly serious tone and let go of the girl’s arm again, straightening herself.

Clarke nodded vehemently, her blue eyes had widened visibly at the general’s words. She would have liked to defend herself, telling the older woman that she would not consider making Marie’s power public, but she knew Anya well enough, her words would not ease the general’s mind now. Her words would be hypocrite as well, she had already used Marie against Lexa during their fight, she may feel ashamed about that now, but it did not change the fact, that she had.

Clarke closed her eyes again, as she heard the general turn and leave the room. Silence settled around her, while their fight resonated loudly through her mind. She had promised Lexa to be there for her whenever she needed her and at the first instance where she disagreed with the commander’s decision, she had stood against her. Clarke dearly hoped that she would somehow be able to apologize to Lexa, she had fought the leader so hard to be allowed inside her heart and she felt as if she had erased all this progress by one single fight. One single instance, where she had let her feelings overtake her rationality and she had to lash out Lexa, probably the one who truly was the most undeserving of her anger. She was angry at the injustice of the whole system, but Lexa had not made the grounder society, she was trying to change it for the better, but the changes needed time. It was a tragedy that the changes had not been implemented quick enough to save Nymo, but if she thought calmly about it, Nymo’s death was truly not Lexa’s fault.

~ ~ ~

Lexa remained kneeling in front of Marie, the child’s arms slung around her neck and her face pressed against her throat, for long silent moments. She could feel that the child was unmistakably crying, her small frame shuddering in her arms and she felt her tears against the skin of her throat as well.

She knew that the funeral rites for Nymo would be starting in less than two candle marks and for the sake of the remaining nightblood children, she would have to appear strong and unwavering in front of them.

“It is not your fault that Nymo died” she intoned in a strong voice, as she pried the girl’s arms from her neck and backed off slightly. Lexa stood back up again, keeping the child’s hand within her own and pulling her towards on of the armchairs. She sat down and tugged at Marie lightly to prompt her to climb into her lap.

“It is not yours either” Marie retorted seriously. Her face was pale and grey eyes looked red and puffy.

Lexa was caught off guard slightly by the girl’s rational acceptance of her friend’s death. In her opinion Marie had more of a reason to be angry with her on Nymo’s behalf, than Clarke had had. As soon as her thoughts strayed to Clarke, she banished them from her mind forcefully.

“Clarke is wrong…” Marie said, when Lexa had not reacted verbally after a moment “…you care for all of them”.

Lexa gave the girl a shaky smile. Clarke would forever be slightly righteous in her anger about her betrayal at the Mountain, the blonde had understood on a political level, but her heart would obviously never understand and truly forgive it. Lexa feared that this would forever be hanging between them.

“I do” she agreed, voice tinted with regret. She would not be feeling for the nightbloods’ deaths in such a fashion, if she had not cared for them. She had felt for Skykru at the foot of the Mountain as well, but it had been the only sensible decision she could have made at the time.

Lexa had her hands lying on Marie’s back, securing the girl in her place, before she could fall down backwards from the armchair. Clarke was right on one point, she loved Marie deeply and because of her love for the child she had elevated her life, but that would remain that way.

“I am sorry…” Marie repeated lowly, as she leaned forward, letting her cheek rest comfortably on the commander’s chest. It was obvious that Lexa was hurting, her green eyes were filled with deep sadness and Marie had no idea on how to make it better. If it would have been a bleeding wound, she could have sealed it with her power, but she could not do anything now. She was angry at Clarke for hurting the woman in such a fashion. Clarke had promised to her that she had no intention of ever hurting Lexa in any way and yet, she just had. So, Lexa was not just grieving for the loss of another of her nightblood children, but also being hurt by the one she loved.

“For what?” Lexa asked after a beat of silence. One of her hands rested on the back of the girl’s head, while the other caressed over her back softly. She had expected to have to comfort the child, expecting her to grief for Nymo’s death as both children had been connected by a friendship, but Marie appeared more compassionate than anything else at the moment.

“That Clarke said those things” Marie answered, a pout on her lips, as she tilted her head slightly to look up at the commander “I love you, Mommy, and you are anything but weak”.

Lexa snorted slightly under her breath, surprised yet again by the girl’s sudden maturity. “I love you too, my little star” she reassured the child easily, there was no doubt in her mind about that, it was simply a fact at this time now.

She would not question her own strength because of what Clarke had said, Clarke had been angry and the blonde healer had a way to push her in ways, no one else was able to, that was why they had instantly felt connected and attracted to each other. While she did not think that her love for Marie could be a weakness, her feelings for Clarke could very well turn into a weakness. They would forever be each other’s strength and weakness. Only Clarke was able to push her so far, that she lost hold of her calm façade.

She had to think about the impending war now, she could not afford to be distracted by Clarke then. Lexa steeled herself, she could forgive the blonde woman for being angry, she could understand that she had been deeply affected by Nymo’s death. Her big heart, compassion and fiery protectiveness were a few of the things she admired deeply about the Skykru healer.

The fact that Clarke had used the Mountain to make her feel guilty, might have hurt at the moment, but the move had been expected and Lexa was fairly certain that they would never truly be able to forget this. She had betrayed Clarke in that night and she would forever take the blame for it.

But including Marie like that, using her love for the girl against herself, was nothing Lexa could forgive just like that. Clarke had gone too far there, stepped over an invisible boundary. The blonde woman had been privy to many aspects of the commander’s life, that no one else would have been allowed to. Right now, they had been within her quarters, alone and in private. But Lexa was not certain that the fight would have played out any differently in the streets of Polis, the throne room or even on the way towards Ice Nation. Clarke’s hot-headedness was a danger, if the woman did not learn to mind her tongue.

She was unwilling to speak to Clarke right now. She may have appeared calm during their fight, but Lexa wanted to contemplate what had been said in private.

The next days she would mostly be busy with finalizing their plans to start their march. Before leaving Polis for possibly several weeks, she needed to take some time and spent it with the remaining nightbloods as well. A lot still needed to be organized about how to be handled in her absence as well. The last days before a battle were rarely lazy at all and Marie would still need as many quite and private moments with Anya and her, as Lexa could possibly arrange. The child was clearly improving, but Lexa doubted that Marie was truly well again just yet.

They spent long moments in silence, simply embracing each other, both lost in their own thoughts.

Anya’s return broke the silence finally.

Lexa was mildly surprised that the general had came alone, if Clarke was anything, she was stubborn and she doubted that she would have run out of arguments yet.

Marie smiled faintly at the woman in mute greeting, not moving an inch from her spot in Lexa’s lap.

Anya’s face softened immediately at the sight. Lexa looked calmer again as well, but her gaze still showed her sorrow.

“Where is Clarke?” Lexa asked in a guarded tone. She highly doubted that Anya would have physically retaliated against the blonde woman and she could not spot on her knuckles either.

“In her assigned room” Anya answered easily and she rolled her eyes before she added “Probably grovelling in guilt by now”.

Lexa raised a brow minutely, but shook her head again immediately. “The funeral rites will begin soon” she proclaimed, gently nudging Marie to ease out of her lap.

The girl pouted visibly and her shoulders sagged. The funeral rites before had already been long and exhausting, having to face this again in such a short amount of time simply hurt. She reluctantly climbed out of Lexa’s lap, only when Anya stepped closer and offered a hand to help her up. “I don’t wanna go…” she whined, eyes shining with tears again.

Anya sighed under her breath, while Lexa stood up again, shaking out her tingling legs quickly.

The commander needed to wipe off her war paint from her face, it had still been in place after the war meeting, but the funeral rites of a nightblood was no place to wear war paint.

Anya squeezed the child’s shoulders. Marie was not necessarily required to be present, but she had been a friend to Nymo and she knew that the girl would probably regret not going later if she remained behind now. “You will manage” she reassured the child in a calm tone.

Marie scowled slightly, before her expression fell again “I don’t want to have to attend more funeral rites…” she trailed off when a throat lodged itself into her throat.

Anya frowned slightly. She had already been present at endless numbers of pyres to burn fallen comrades. Death in battle was usually what ended a warrior’s duty in the army and there had always been war somewhere. She did not know if telling the girl that she would get used to the sight, was a good idea at this point, she doubted that Marie would find the reassurance helpful at the moment.

“You do not need to attend, if you do not want to” Lexa proclaimed, wiping over her face with a wet washcloth, wiping away the black war paint.

Marie shook her head “No, he was my friend” she said “I wanna be there now, but…” she trailed off again.

“But what?” Anya asked, looking down at the girl quizzingly in confusion.

“We will go to war soon” Marie proclaimed, twisting the hem of her shirt in her fingers.

Anya inclined her head in mute agreement, Lexa had turned around to face Marie as well.

Marie asked faintly, voice shaking strongly, while she voiced her worse fear and her grey eyes flitting between both of them, widened and filled with tears again “How do you know that there will not be a pyre for one or both of you?”

 

Chapter 209

Anya looked down at the girl with compassionate eyes, after banding a short glance with Lexa. It should surprise neither of them that Marie was afraid of loosing one of them, the girl cared as much for them as they loved her after all. Anya did not wish to imagine how deep Marie’s grief would be, would one of them truly not survive this war, but neither of them could honestly promise that nothing would be happening to one of them either.

The war would start in their favour, they would outnumber the Ice Nation soldiers greatly. With Ontari and Roan both on their side, they now had much more knowledge of the land and where exactly Nia’s fortress was located. Ontari had even been able to supply the commander with information regarding emergency plans if it came to a siege. The blockade around the borders of Azgeda had been in place for long enough to that the commander was convinced that the population of Ice Nation would already be in the process of starving. Both, Ontari and Roan, agreed to that fact, but had also cautiously pointed out that Nia would have called for all the remaining resources to be brought to her own fortress, not caring in the slightest if her people starved, as long as she and her soldiers were still able to sustain themselves.

But even with these positive preconditions, Lexa was certain that Nia would still have surprises hidden somewhere and she would not be foolish enough to assume that the woman would give up her throne willingly without a fight.

“You know very well, that neither of us can promise to you to survive this war, Marie” Lexa answered the girl’s question in a calm but heavy tone. She was reminded of the girl’s fear in the wake of the Mountain in this moment, back then she had also not lied to the girl either. She stepped closer to the girl and gently wiped the tears from her cheeks. “We are planning this war ahead as well as possible, but anything can happen during a war. Neither of us wish to leave you behind anytime soon, Marie, but just like you cannot promise to survive, we cannot as well” Lexa explained to the child.

Marie nodded in acknowledgement, but her expression still looked miserable.

Lexa enveloped the girl in her arms for a few silent moments, before she squeezed her shoulder “It is time to go” she proclaimed in a low tone.

Marie backed off from the commander with sadness etched into her features, she understood that Lexa now needed to appear in her function and could not let her remain this close. So, she stepped closer to Anya instead and was internally relieved, when the general immediately put an arm around her shoulders, pulling her into a sort of one-armed hug. Marie watched on in silence, how Lexa took up the shoulder pauldron of the commander, fasting it around her body and last adjusting the red sash as well. She felt incredibly sorry for the woman, as she watched Lexa’s grief disappear behind the calm and stoic façade of the commander, but she knew that there was nothing she could do at the moment for Lexa.

Anya’s hand remained on her back the whole way to the elevator and to the floor of the conclave.

Marie’s breath hitched when she immediately spotted Nymo’s body on a table, hidden beneath a bright piece of cloths. Flowers and candles were arranged around his body already and Titus just stepped back from his body, fingers dipped in a black liquid. Marie did not care to wonder if it was black paint or actually some of Nymo’s blood.

Marie spotted Ontari standing a little away from Aden and Saria, the three youngest nightblood children stood between the two, holding onto each other, while Boo and Kyla both held a hand of Saria and Aden. She frowned slightly, Ontari still stood isolated and awkward from the others.

Marie felt Anya giving her shoulder a squeeze, like during the previous funeral rites, Anya would have to stand in the back, while she herself could join the other nightbloods. She would have preferred to follow Lexa, who immediately walked up to Titus, but she knew that she would not be allowed there at the moment.

She looked up at Anya for a moment, before she followed her slight nudge to move towards the other nightblood children. Without being prompted to, Marie stepped up to Ontari, slightly leaning against the older girl immediately.

Ontari looked down at Marie with a slight frown, while she let her uninjured arm wind itself around the younger girl, pulling her even closer to herself. She was internally grateful that Marie was with her now, she had not been particularly close to Nymo either. The only one of the nightbloods she was now at least a little connected to was maybe Aden. But the blonde boy had been swarmed by the younger nightblood children immediately upon his entry to the room and Ontari had taken a step back from him, isolating herself again. Although the younger ones had not looked at her as distrustfully as before, Ontari knew that she was not welcome among them at the moment either. She had been unable to decipher June’s gaze, when they had looked at each other briefly.

She tightened her arm around Marie, when she felt the younger girl begin to cry, as soon as Titus spoke up, praising Nymo’s strength. Marie’s sobs were low, but she could feel her body shaking against herself.

Ontari knew that Marie had been friends with Nymo right from the start, the younger girl had told her so previously. So, it was no wonder that she grieved for his death.

She frowned slightly, when she looked over at the other nightbloods. Three of them way too young to be able to become commander in the immediate future. June was also still a little young to make a good leader, which only left herself and Aden as the only possible successors. Ontari truly hoped that there would not be a conclave too soon, as both of them were wounded, they would really make a pathetic conclave. She could not understand anymore, why she had been convinced a few months ago, to be ready to become the next commander; she knew better now and internally hoped that Lexa would remain in her position for longer.

~ ~ ~

The funeral rites seemed to stretch endlessly to Marie. She barely noticed when Titus stopped talking, only for Lexa to say some more words, none of them registered clearly in her mind at the moment. She blindly followed Ontari’s light nudge to get moving, when it was time to move out of the tower and to truly burn Nyno’s body.

Marie hoped that she would not have to see more funeral rites like this, in her mind, she could see Lexa, Anya and Ontari lying on the pyre instead of Nymo’s smaller body. She knew that Lexa was right though, there was no way of predicting the future. She might be able to cheat fate and heal the three, if they were gravely wounded during the war. Marie realized that she would have stay close to all three of them, to be able to heal them, if needed. She knew that all three of them were great fighters, but Marie feared what the queen would still be able to do, even if her own troops were truly outnumbered so greatly. She could not remember seeing the queen actually fighting during her time in her fortress, but she knew without a doubt that the queen would have some hidden attacks at the ready.

She watched on, mind weirdly numb, how Lexa lit Nymo’s pyre in front of the basement of the tower. Marie barely registered just how crowded the place in front of the pyre was and she did not really notice how Lexa told the crowd that troops had already been sent this very day to avenge the fallen nightbloods, bringing an end to the bandits once and for all.

She blinked up at Anya, when the woman suddenly appeared behind them; she again had stood lightly leaned against Ontari’s frame.

Anya had watched the girl carefully during the previous hours, it had teared painfully at her heart to have to watch the suffering of the child without anything she could do to truly comfort her. She had also seen right through Lexa’s impassive mask, although her previous second’s face had appeared to be carved out of stone, her green eyes were clouded with sorrow, grief and guilt.

She spotted Clarke in the front of the crowd and Marie felt a flash of anger course through her mind at her sight. The blonde woman did not appear angry any longer and her blue-eyed gaze was not fixed at the nearly burnt pyre, but rather on Lexa, although Marie could see that the commander was not looking back at her at all.

It was starting to turn dark around them and Marie lowly asked “Can we go inside again?” towards Anya, tilting her head upwards to look at the general. She felt tired all of a sudden and she just now realized that she was shivering, although Marie could not detect feeling particularly cold.

Anya nodded in agreement, motioning Ontari to come as well. The pyre had burnt down far enough, that their attendance was not mandatory any longer and the especially the nightblood girl looked paler, than she had liked. She had not had the opportunity yet, to inquire if her stitches had been ripped previously. It had been obvious that Marie had been far away with her thoughts, not reacting to anything said or shouted around her, maybe only anchored to the presence by her contact to Ontari.

She knew that the commander would join them later, Lexa would wait until the pyre had burnt down to glowing embers and Anya could only imagine what was going on in pervious second’s mind. She still felt that she had somehow failed Tris and the loss resurfaced from time to time. Lexa now had lost five of the nightblood children, which had grown up under her tutelage and the guilt of that would surely be weighing heavily on her conscience as well.

Anya glanced down from the podium at Clarke minutely, when she noticed the brief anger flash through Marie’s grey eyes and her own lips thinned in irritation. The blonde healer should be standing beside Lexa now, but due to her own stupidity, both women were once again at odds and Anya had no idea how long it might take until they found their way back together. Lexa could be stubborn if she wanted and Anya sensed that the commander would be unwilling to forgive Clarke right at this moment, focusing on the upcoming war instead. If Clarke was somehow the cause of Lexa’s mind being elsewhere during the war, Anya vowed to herself to rip the Skykru woman apart with her bare hands in retaliation.

She guided both girls into back the direction of the tower in silence, catching Lexa’s gaze in passing. The commander’s green eyes were stormy with suppressed emotions, but there was no visible crack in her façade otherwise and no one who did not know Lexa closely, would be able to tell the difference anyway. Anya had always tried to instil into Lexa early from her training that showing her emotions on her face was a weakness and a weakness which could easily lead to her death in battle, but it was almost scarily how Lexa had perfected this skill, being much better at hiding her emotions now than Anya herself had ever been.

Ontari was looking forward to return to their quarters, although she had the gnawing suspicion that they were not on their way to their own quarters but to the commander’s quarters. She had of course also noticed that Marie had slept much calmer during the last night, she did not really understand it why Marie could draw such measures of comfort from the combined presence of the general and the commander, but she could not deny the effects either.

During her arrival at the rooms in which the healers in the tower treated their patients, Ontari had been seen to by Laurel herself and to her utmost displeasure the old woman had to have to redo at least part of the stitches. The woman had scolded her the whole time for her carelessness, telling her quiet frankly that the wound would surely never heal if she did not take better care of herself. Ontari had tried in vain to defend herself, only prolonging the healer’s rant as an effect and she had the pressing suspicion that the tea, the healer had made her drink in the end, had somehow been tempered with to taste extra foully as well. Whatever exactly the tea had contained, had made a sense of numbness spread through her body and during the last part of the funeral rites, Ontari had begun to feel extremely sleepy, she had feared to collapse soon, right before the general had finally made her way over to them.

So, Ontari was truly relieved that they would finally return inside, she would not be picky at the moment about where she was told to sleep either. The couch within the commander’s quarters was comfy enough as well and if it helped Marie, Ontari would be willing to have to sleep on it for a while. She somehow doubted that offering to the general to sleep on her own in their actual shared quarters would go over too well. Ontari still did not really understand why the general was so insistent on the fact that they needed to share a sleeping space at all. To her knowledge such a thing was not done in Ice Nation at all. All seconds would share a room in Nia’s fortress and on journeys the seconds were usually the ones who had to sleep in the least comfortable tents, if they were given one at all, no matter how young they were. Although now, that she thought about it, Ontari could not remember that seconds in Azgeda were under the age of ten summers at all. In the queen’s fortress, the children had been educated together by the royal guard up to this point and only if they had proven their worth so far, they were considered to be assigned a first after their tenth summer. She remembered with a slight grimace, just how many children she had seen fail at the training with the loyal guard.

She blinked slightly, when Marie squeezed her hand and she wondered why the child’s grey eyes seemed worried. Ontari looked over to the general and noticed that she had somehow not truly noticed that they had already arrived in the commander’s quarters at all, the general’s brown eyes were focused on her expectantly, she must have missed her questioning her on something.

Ontari looked right back at the Trikru woman for long moments and when it became apparent that Anya would not repeat her question without being prompted, she huffed lightly under her breath, before she forcefully pushed the annoyance from her mind “I am sorry…” she said, voice a little hesitant and the hint of a grimace pulling at her features “I must have missed your question…”.

Anya pursed her lips and worry visibly flashed through her brown eyes, both of her charges seemed preoccupied with their own thoughts, but Ontari still looked much too pale to be considered healthy. She was positively surprised that the nightblood girl now seemed compliant again. During the morning and her attempt at helping the girl get ready, Ontari had well known how to test her nerves.

“I wanted to know what the healers have said” she repeated her original inquiry in a sharp tone, watching the girl’s antics intently.

From the corner of her eyes, Anya could see that Marie had sat down on the floor in front of the fire place, where Risha had been sleeping. Her expression softened a fraction, when the child seemed to curl herself around the sleeping wolf, Risha woke up briefly, huffed at her human and only placed her muzzle between the girl’s arms. She highly doubted that the floor was a place for Marie to rest on, but she would leave the child be for the moment.

Ontari sighed tiredly “Laurel redid some of the stitches” she informed the general truthfully. There was no sense in lying about it anyway, the general could simply ask the healer in person and hear about it as well. She knew that with every day of her wounds not beginning to heal, the time for them to truly close would just extent. The nightblood flowing through her veins gave her an advantage on that point, she would probably not have survived the infection after the stabbing wound with normal blood all those months ago, but they needed to begin to close first, before her quicker healing could take effect.

Anya frowned at the information, but nodded in agreement. “You shall have to rest until the army begins its march” she proclaimed in a decisive tone. If the girl’s wounds did not begin to close, she could not allow her to accompany them and both Lexa and she had agreed that Ontari’s knowledge of Nia’s fortress could truly be helpful, it would probably be impossible for the girl to tell them every little detail beforehand.

Ontari grimaced at the prospect, she could already imagine what the general meant by “resting”, she would probably be confined to a bed, forced to sit idle. “How long until we leave Polis?” she asked, hope hinting in her tone, maybe her time of confinement would not be too long.

“It is not settled yet” Anya answered easily, discarding her coat “it should not be longer than a week though”.

Ontari nodded, her grimace deepening slightly. A week could stretch awfully long, if she truly had to spent it solely resting. She was also not really used to the concept of being forced to rest, Nia had usually forced her back to her feet as soon as she could remain standing after a more severe injury. Despite already assuming that the general would deny her idea, Ontari said “I can sleep in our…”, but she was stopped midsentence.

“You shall sleep on the couch again” Anya interrupted the nightblood girl in a sharp tone and her eyes had gotten harder again, she would not argue about their sleeping arrangement with the girl right now.

Ontari closed her mouth with an audible snap and rolled her eyes slightly, but she nodded in mute acknowledgement. She rolled her eyes again, when Anya stepped closer to her and immediately began opening her coat for her; Laurel had closed it over her bandaged arm before and Ontari would not have been able to open it without assistance.

She sat down on the couch, when Anya gave her uninjured shoulder a slight shove and bit her lip to keep silent when the general immediately opened and removed her boots as well. Ontari truly already hated needing this form of assistance with a passion. She minutely tried picturing Nia with her in the same situation, but shook the image of Nia crouched in front of her, instead of Anya doing it now, from her mind quickly. The idea was simply absurd, Nia would never have helped her in such a fashion at all. She would surely have been punished for being this injured at all and being caused by rouge bandits to top it off.

“Thank you” she offered, almost meekly, when the general stood up again.

Anya acknowledged the girl’s gratitude with a curt nod, scrutinizing her for a moment, before she changed her mind and said “You are my second now, Ontari, being a first to someone is not just about intoning combat skills and battle strategies. But rather about providing a trusting environment to learn as well” she had chosen her words carefully. She would have worded them differently, if she had addressed Marie, but she would not label the growing relationship to Ontari with anything resembling a “family” just yet, but Anya could not deny that their bond would surely change in the future.

Ontari nodded with a contemplative expression, caught a little off guard by the general’s words. She was still surprised that the general was taking this whole first and second thing so seriously. In the beginning she had assumed, that Lexa had made this a precondition to let her survive at all, but somehow, she was not so convinced of that assumption any longer. She knew that she still hesitated to truly trust the general, but she could not deny that the Trikru was making an effort. Maybe, Ontari mused, she would be required to make an effort as well and not just for Marie’s sake, but for her own as well.

 

 

Chapter 210

On the way back inside of the tower, Lexa could already sense Clarke trying to follow her. She ignored the blonde woman’s presence behind herself until they had reached the inside of the tower. Lexa only turned around in front of the elevator door, motioning Gustus and Ryder to precede herself into the elevator. When she faced Clarke, her expression was as blank as she could force it to be at the moment.

“What is it you wish to throw at me now?” Lexa asked, clasping her hands behind her back and standing straighter again. She felt the exhaustion of the day pulling at her mind and she wished to curl into her bed, hopefully trying to ban what had happened today from it forever.

Clarke visibly winced at the commander’s question, but she did not show otherwise that the other woman’s words might have hurt her. “I am sorry...” she began, blue eyes honest, but her gaze darted above Lexa’s shoulder towards the two guards waiting up on their leader. Both of them were glaring daggers at her and Clarke realized that she had not just destroyed some part of the trust between herself and Lexa during their fight, but had probably also lost the respect of those around the commander. She grimaced lightly, wondering just how Marie would react the next time they saw each other, the girl had listened to the fight after all and had not really been trusting of her before. She had the gnawing suspicion that Lexa would truly favour Marie’s wellbeing now if she had to choose between their relationship and Marie and Clarke knew that she was the only one to blame for that.

Something flashed through Lexa’s green eyes as anger flitted over her features minutely, before they blanked again and her tone carried a bitter hint of acceptance “You have more than plainly stated your mind, Clarke, leave me be for tonight". Lexa felt tired and she knew that she had no energy left to fight with the blonde, her heart ached a little at the hurt which now visibly shown in Clarke’s blue eyes, but Lexa steeled her resolve. She turned on her heels, not giving the other woman a chance to say more, joining Gustus and Ryder in the elevator a second later.

When the door to the elevator closed, Lexa could hear Clarke calling out her name with a deep desperation underlying her tone and the tears which showed in her blue eyes, were like another physical punch to Lexa, but she breathed easier again once the doors had closed again and the elevator began to ascend upwards.

Clarke watched Lexa leave with a sob caught in her throat. She had seen with her own eyes how much she must have hurt the stoic leader, her expression might have been calm and controlled, but her green eyes had given away the sorrow and resignation clouding the commander’s mind. She felt her shoulders drop in failure, she knew that trying to follow Lexa into her quarters now would be pointless, she would not he granted excess and neither could she force herself into Lexa’s presence right now. The woman’s request to be left alone for the night resonated loudly through the night and Clarke realized that Lexa seemed to expect their fight to continue. A single tear ran down her face as she swallowed down her frustration and resigned herself to at least respect Lexa’s wish for now.

~ ~ ~

Lexa felt slightly better immediately once she stepped foot back into her quarters. She was not surprised to see Ontari and Anya sitting on the couch, while the nightblood girl looked close to falling asleep already. She felt her heart warm, spotting Marie lying on the floor curled together with Risha. The child’s fingers were carding through the wolf’s fur and her gaze was fixed on the dancing flames in front of her.

She quickly divested herself of the pieces of clothing signalling her station as the commander.

“I half expected Clarke on your heels…” Anya commented, the hint of a tease in her tone.

Lexa shot the older woman a scathing glare. She was well aware that Anya had never taken a real liking to Clarke and her former mentor was still so very protective of her, it would probably be amusing to see if she were not the commander. Lexa had no idea how to proceed with Clarke from this point on. A surge of fear flashed through Lexa’s mind at the realization how her last fight with Costia had played out, the scout had left Polis without her knowledge and against her strict orders, only to return in pieces to her bed.

Marie looked up from her place on the floor, when Anya spoke up. Her grey eyes narrowed at the woman at the mention of Clarke “She’s not coming tonight, right?” she asked, voice underlined with definite hostility. Seeing Clarke was the last thing Marie wished to do right now. She stood up from the floor again, giving the commander a perfect innocent look, as she climbed into the armchair with the woman. 

Lexa smiled softly at the girl, as her arms immediately curled around the child’s body, pulling her closer to herself and securing her in place. She let one hand caress over the girl’s back gently, when she felt Marie nestling her face into the croak of her neck.

“No, Clarke will not be here tonight” Lexa assured Marie in a calm tone. The hostility flashing through Marie’s grey eyes momentarily, alarmed Lexa slightly. She knew that the child had still not truly warmed to Clarke and witnessing their fight would surely not have helped that.

Marie nodded, slightly relieved at the confirmation, making herself more comfortable in Lexa’s arms.

The commander looked down at the child with a gentle expression, before she glanced over at Ontari. It was obvious that the older girl was extremely tired as well at the moment, they should all turn in for the night soon.

“Have your wounds been cared for yet?” she asked the girl in a kind tone. She knew well enough that it would not take long for Marie to doze off in this position and it was easier to take care of the wounds on her collarbone, if she could still stand upright.

Marie shook her head in the negative, a frown pulling at her lips. She knew what Lexa had intended with her question and she took hold of the commander’s shirt, burrowing herself more firmly against her body, with a light whine.

Lexa smirked slightly in amusement at the girl’s antics, while she could see Anya narrowing her brown eyes at the child. She shook her head subtly at the general, standing up from the armchair with Marie still in her arms. “We shall do so now then” she proclaimed and laughed under her breath when the child whined lightly again in clear protest.

“Do you need anything else?” Anya addressed Ontari in a kind tone, watching Lexa carrying Marie into the bathroom.

Ontari shook her head in the negative mutely, jawing deeply a second later.

Anya inclined her head in acknowledgement “Rest then” she retorted and added a curt “Good night”, as she stood up from the sofa as well, heading over to the commander’s bed.

Marie only reluctantly let go of Lexa, when the commander urged her too, only letting go completely, when the woman’s voice turned slightly sharper. She looked up at the woman with a slight pout “The skin does not itch really” she began to argue. Getting the bandages changed over the chunks of skin, she had cut away, hurt, when the bandages pulled at the wounds.

Lexa sighed under her breath “We do not want the wounds to get infected now, Marie” she tried to reason with the girl.

Marie’s pout deepened “It feels fine, really” she argued right back.

Lexa’s expression turned a little impatient and staring the girl down for a moment, was enough for her pout to melt away and Marie stripped out of her shirt without being prompted to, a flash of an apology passing over her features momentarily. She tried to be cautious when she removed the bandage from the girl’s upper body and Lexa carefully inspected the shallow wounds.

Marie seemed correct in her assessment, there was no sign of an insetting infection and the wounds were truly beginning to close, there was not much of a seepage any longer as well.

Marie stood still, while Lexa gently applied the disinfecting ointment to the wounded skin and she barely felt any pain from it any longer, getting the kill marks burnt into her skin had truly hurt much more and the pain had been lasting as well, as no one had taken care of the wounds in the queen’s fortress. She was glad that it was in fact Lexa taking care of her and not Clarke, who had mostly done so previously.

Her brows scrunched together as she thought of Clarke again “She lied…” she proclaimed in a tone laced deeply with accusation.

Lexa minutely paused in her administration, green eyes flicking to the girl’s face shortly, unsure to who Marie was eluding to at the moment and she raised a brow in silent question at the girl.

Marie scowled when she bit out “I mean Clarke…” her grey eyes darkened slightly “she had promised that she would do nothing to hurt you…” she looked at the commander with a frown.

Lexa was minutely caught off guard by what she assumed to be disappointment and maybe protectiveness emitting from the blonde girl.

“…but she did!” Marie added, voice rising at the end in obvious agitation and her hands balled into fists at her side.

Lexa shook her head slightly, as she grasped onto Marie’s hands. “Marie, listen to me” she urged the upset child, waiting until their gazes connected again “Clarke and I fought, yes, and she did say things that she should not have, especially in front of you, Marie, things which have indeed hurt me. But this fight does not concern you”.

Marie frowned visibly, but nodded her head with a slightly confused expression. “But she was mean to you…” she tried to argue further, tugging at her hands in order to cross her arms over her chest and her pout deepened again, when the woman still held onto her hands, not letting go of them.

Lexa looked down at Marie trying to hold on to at least a slightly strict expression. Right at this moment, Marie truly looked like the girl of only ten summers, she still was. Body skinny and bruised, grey eyes big and confused and a petulant pout on her lips, trying to argue with her, as if she knew better. “I appreciate your worry, Marie, but it is not your place to fight my battles” Lexa addressed the girl intently “I will handle Clarke, Marie, and I do not want to hear you trying to do something on my behalf” she tightened her grip on the girl’s hands slightly, waiting for her to nod in agreement. It was obvious that Marie was reluctant to agree, but she finally nodded.

Marie contemplated Lexa’s words in silence, while she stood obediently still when the commander applied a new bandage around her upper body. She frowned again, when she remembered that Lexa and Anya both had reassured her repeatedly that they would still love her and forgive her, not matter what she would do in the future, wondering if it would be the same between Lexa and Clarke. She did not know if there was a difference in the love between two adults and the love between parents and children.

“Lexa?” Marie addressed the commander, voice slightly hesitant.

“Yes” Lexa immediately reacted, washing her hands clean of the ointment and waiting for the child to state what was obviously still troubling her mind.

“Do you still love Clarke?” Marie asked bluntly, honestly curious.

Lexa sighed under her breath lightly, a little annoyed at the fact that Marie’s mind had obviously chosen to focus on the conflict between herself and Clarke, probably in an attempt not to have to consider Nymo’s death at all. She inclined her head after a moment of hesitation. Clarke had deeply hurt her with her accusations, but she still felt the same about the fierce blonde healer.

Marie’s brows creased together slightly. “Will you forgive her?” she questioned next, tilting her head to the side slightly as she did so, staring intently at the brunette woman.

Lexa’s lips thinned for the fraction of a second, as she contemplated a fitting answer. “I shall see” she finally answered vaguely “I have the upcoming war to focus on, I cannot afford to be distracted now” she knew that her tone had darkened noticeably, when she watched the frown deepening on Marie’s face.

“Do you love me and Clarke in the same way?” Marie asked after a short beat of silence. Internally Marie wondered what would happen, if she truly hurt Lexa ever in such a fashion, not that she intended to do so.

Lexa frowned slightly for a moment, her first instinct had been to agree to the question, but she realized immediately that the girl’s question might be carrying a deeper meaning behind it. She tried to push the annoyance from her mind and solely focused on Marie, only grateful that the child was asking her these loaded questions now in total privacy.

She handed Marie a clean shirt, giving herself another short moment to contemplate on how to proceed. “What is really troubling your mind, Marie?” Lexa finally directly diverted the girl’s question, once Marie had dressed herself again.

“I have hurt you as well…” Marie retorted with the hint of a whine in her tone. She remembered now how cautious and guarded Lexa had been around her, when she had still been missing her own memories and had not recognized the woman any longer. She had been sent to the capitol to kill the commander and she had nearly done so, even before that. So, she had not just hurt the woman with her words, but had truly physically hurt her before as well. But Lexa still said that she loved her and that there was nothing to forgive, so she now could not spot the difference.

Lexa sighed under her breath, when she realized what Marie must actually be meaning at all. She crouched down in front of the girl again, bringing them back onto the same level. “You do not understand why I do not intent to forgive Clarke easily, while I treat you differently?” she asked, just to make sure that she truly had understood the child correctly.

Marie nodded in mute agreement immediately, fearing that she could also easily lose the woman’s love if she did something wrong.

Lexa smiled gently at the child, when she spotted a flash of fear pass over the girl’s features and she squeezed the girl’s shoulders reassuringly “There is absolutely no need for you to fear that my feelings for you will ever change, Marie, in this sense there is a difference between what I feel for you and for Clarke” she huffed lightly, feeling that her eloquence was failing her at this moment.

She thought for a little moment, before she asked “Would your mother have ever stopped loving you?” Lexa kept her tone gentle and looked intently at the girl.

Marie immediately shook her head in the negative, no doubt about the answer in her mind.

Although Lexa felt a little frustrated that Marie obviously still was not as sure of her love for her as she would have liked, she kept her expression kind “It is the same now between you and me and Anya” Lexa proclaimed in a firm tone. She had purposefully included Anya in the statement. Anya might still sometimes retain a certain act of indifference, but the little conflict between her and Marie had shown Lexa easily that her former mentor felt the same. Anya might also sometimes need a little time to cool off, but it would not change the depths of her feelings for the child no matter what.

Marie’s lips tilted up in a smile, as her grey eyes connected with Lexa’s green orbs for long moments. She stepped closer to the woman, so that she could hug her firmly, Lexa had still been crouching in front of her.

Lexa responded to the girl’s hug and wound her own arms around the girl, picking her up a moment later without any prewarning, prompting a little startled giggle from the child’s lips. “It is bedtime now” she proclaimed kindly.

“I am not tired yet” Marie immediately retorted, a pout taking up residence on her face again.

Lexa snorted lightly under her breath, knowing for certain that the girl would fall asleep only a few moments after going to bed, if she or Anya joined her. She carried Marie over into the main room of her quarter’s, spotting Ontari already asleep on the couch, while Anya had turned her head in their direction, obviously still awake.

A frown rested on Anya’s features and Lexa guessed that the older woman had probably been wondering what might have taken them so long. She only mutely inclined her head towards her former mentor, they could talk in the morning as well.

“I am really not tired yet” Marie repeated, when Lexa placed her onto the bed, nudging her into Anya’s direction mutely.

Lexa shook her head at the girl, a mixture of fondness and amusement dancing through her eyes at the girl’s antics.

Anya’s lips thinned visibly at Marie’s childish antics. On the one hand she was infinitely relieved to note that Marie’s behaviour was finally normalizing itself, not through the whole day yet, but the glimpses of the girl’s original character peeking through were getting more frequently and lasted longer; on the other hand the girl was now again starting to test out her limits and Lexa and she obviously disagreed quiet strongly on which rules to set for the child.

“You have nearly been asleep on the floor before” she pointed out, voice tinted with clear impatience.

Marie winced slightly at the general’s words and when she felt her brown eyes resting heavily on her, she scooted closer to the woman, mutely cuddling up to her, while Lexa was still occupied with changing her clothes to her sleeping attire.

Anya’s expression softened visibly and she felt her irritation melt away in seconds, as she tightened an arm around the child’s smaller body, letting one hand card through her blonde hair soothingly.

“Not tired…” she commented sarcastically, when she felt the child’s body relaxing in her arms already, even before Lexa joined them in the bed.

Lexa smiled fondly at both of them, when she also slipped beneath the furs. She knew that the next days would remain hectic and stressful until the army would finally begin its march. She expected that the troops, she had sent out this day to take care of the bandits, would return in around two to three days, calculating two more days for them to rest again, could mean that they could potentially leave Polis in around five days. She knew that the Skykru delegation who would join the army, would arrive the day after tomorrow and Lexa hoped that the integration of them into the rest of the army would work out better than she anticipated. Clarke and Monty had both reassured her that the soldiers had been chosen carefully from Skykru, but Lexa still expected the worse; were it not for the clear advantage their firearms gave to them, she would have disagreed to take them with the rest of the army at all.

Her eyes opened again completely, when she noticed a slight golden shine in front of her. Lexa watched on with a frown, how Anya tensed, pain flashing over her features, while Marie’s hands seemed to glow shortly. Anya had suffered a few superficial wounds during the training session and Marie was obviously healing them.

Both of them bandied a worried glance, when Marie’s hands stopped to glow and the girl had just fallen asleep like that. Had the child just healed Anya’s wounds without even consciously choosing to do so?

 

 

 

 

Chapter 22: Chapter 211 - 220

Chapter Text

Chapter 211

Marie woke on the next morning to Anya shaking her shoulder. She smiled up at the woman slightly in greeting, stretching under the furs, blinking off the residual tiredness. Her smile dimmed a little when she remembered the events of the previous days.

She frowned slightly when she noticed that Lexa and Ontari were already in the process of eating breakfast. The bed was already cold beside her, so Anya and the commander must have risen some time ago already as well.

Risha stood directly in front of the bed, wagging her tail at her human in obviously exited amusement. Marie’s face lightened up with a smile again directed at the wolf and she giggled audibly when Risha jumped up onto the bed, licking over her face quickly.

Anya’s previous worry melted from her features at the sight. She had tried unsuccessfully for several moments before to wake the child up, the girl had been uncharacteristically quiet through the whole night, only beginning to toss and turn in the early hours of the morning. “How are you feeling?” the general addressed the blonde child in a kind tone, sitting down on the edge of the bed for a moment.

Marie lightly shoved at Risha, prompting the wolf to at least stop licking at her face. “Good, Mama” she offered in a soft tone.

Anya smiled openly at the child in reaction to the usage of the term in such a nonchalant way. “Up to the bathroom with you” she directed at the girl, motioning Risha with a snap of her fingers to leave the commander’s bed.

“Can’t I eat first?” Marie retorted with a slight pout, her lower lip protruding visibly while she looked up at Anya with big innocent grey eyes.

Anya’s lips thinned slightly and she narrowed her eyes at the girl mutely, pointing towards the bathroom once “Bathroom, now!” she added after a moment, tone noticeably sharper.

Lexa looked over at the two with the hint of a frown, she would not see any harm in letting the girl eat her breakfast now. But she also still remembered Clarke cautioning her not to contradict Anya too often in front of Marie, it was reasonable that the child would be conflicted by such contradictions. Thinking of Clarke, made a flash of resignation pass through her mind.

Anya watched with her arms crossed over her chest, how Marie trudged into the bathroom, looking for all purposes as if having to wash herself now had been some kind of devasting punishment for her. She joined back with Lexa and the nightblood girl at the table, rolling her eyes at the wolf clearly glaring at her. It was really exceptional to see how the wolf had begun to react to Marie’s mood in the last weeks, she was sure that Risha would also physically protect her girl if needed as well.

“She could have also just eaten breakfast first” Lexa commented lightly, once she was sure that Marie had closed the door to the bathroom behind herself.

Anya visibly frowned at the commander, eyes narrowing, while Ontari looked visibly uncomfortable at being in this situation at all. The general had already told her older charge that a healer would come to take a look at her shoulder directly after breakfast and that she was expected to stay in their quarters and in bed after that for the day, resting as much as possible.

Lexa’s lips curved into the hint of a smile at the clear annoyance flashing over her former mentor’s features. “I will see how she is doing” she proclaimed, slight amusement colouring her tone, as she stood from her chair, not feeling particularly hungry at all. She could apply another bit of the ointment on the wounds onto the girl’s collarbones as well and ask the girl if she remembered healing Anya last night at all. She had thought quite a bit about it during the last night and Lexa was not convinced that Marie had even done the healing consciously at all.

Marie was in the process of brushing her teeth, standing in front of the sink, upper body bare, when Lexa entered the room. She glanced over her shoulder at the commander and smiled with the toothbrush stuck between her lips.

Lexa leaned against the bathing tube, while she waited for the child to finish brushing her teeth and her gaze travelled over the girl’s body during her wait. Marie had visibly gained a little weight again since her return from her time with Nia, but she was still far too thin. She still had not gotten used to the sight of the child’s tattooed skin being scarred in such a fashion and seeing it made her heart ache in her chest for the girl time and time again.

Marie willingly stepped closer to the woman, after finishing with brushing her teeth, she had already spotted the little pot with ointment in the woman’s fingers.

Lexa opened the pot and quickly began to apply some of the ointment to the girl’s, after shortly inspecting the shallow wounds for an infection carefully. She set the pot down on the edge of the bathing tube and gently massaged the ointment into the child’s skin.

“What is the last thing you remember from last night?” Lexa asked the girl, green eyes intent, scrutinizing the child with a penetrating gaze.

Marie frowned visibly, scrunching up her brows in concentration “I don’t know…” she answered “…getting to bed?” she added after a moment, obviously confused at why the commander was asking such a question at all. Her expression turned alarmed when she noticed the growing frown on the commander’s features “Did I do something wrong?” Marie asked, voice clearly unsure.

“No” Lexa quickly shook her head, squeezing the girl’s shoulder once, before she handed her the clean shirt from the side. She internally debated about whether to discuss with Marie how she had healed Anya last night or just to let it slide. The girl seemed worried enough and they did not know if it may not be repeating itself anyway, making it null to add to the girl’s situation. “Did you sleep well?” she asked instead, trying to ban the residual worry from her own eyes, tone light, as she wiped off her hands.

Marie nodded slightly, a little frown remained on her features, wondering why Lexa had asked at all. When the commander stood up, she stepped closer to the woman shortly, enveloping the woman.

Lexa bend down lightly, pressing a kiss to the child’s hairline, hearing a mumbled “Morning, Mummy”, while she tightened her own arms around the girl for a moment. She caressed the girl’s soft cheek for a moment, when Marie backed out of their embrace. “Good morning to you too, my little star” Lexa answered the girl’s greeting with a gentle expression, before she lightly nudged her in the direction of the door “Time for your breakfast, before Anya will lose her patience” she added with the hint of a smile dancing around her lips.

Marie smirked slightly, but obediently proceeded back into the main room of the commander’s quarters, joining Anya and Ontari at the table, Risha lying down at her feet immediately. She frowned slightly when she noted how exhausted the older girl still seemed, Ontari also looked paler than usual.

“Are you not feeling well?” she asked immediately, grey eyes looking at the older girl empathically.

Ontari forced a slight smile onto her face, in truth she did not feel well at all, as she had already told the general. The last days had obviously taken a greater toll on her body than she had assumed, her shoulder throbbed painfully with every breath and she was fairly certain that the wound had swollen somewhat over night as well. “I just need a little rest” she reassured the blonde girl vehemently.

Marie frowned at the older girl, not convinced at all by her answer. Her attention was diverted from Ontari slightly, when Anya cleared her throat loudly and pointed to the mug with tea in front of Marie pointedly. Marie sighed under her breath, but did not argue again about having to drink the tea or not.

“You will accompany me to training, while Ontari rests” Anya informed the blonde girl in a sharp tone, not leaving any room for potential discussion. She had no plans of leaving the girl unsupervised now, it seemed as if Marie had taken Nymo’s death much better than she had anticipated, but she could always show her real feelings about the matter later on.

Marie nodded with a slight pout, not really in the mood to have to sit next to the training pits and watch Anya train on her own. It was more fun with Ontari beside her, but it would be totally boring on her own. “Can I go to the stables…” Marie questioned the general immediately, when she noticed the woman frowning slightly, she quickly added “…afterwards?” with big innocent eyes

Anya sighed lightly under her breath, the child had not been to see the horses in a few days now, so it was no surprise that she wished to return to the stables. She inclined her head in mute agreement, prompting a pleased smile from the child.

“You have also not continued your studies of the first commander’s journal” Lexa addressed Marie over her own mug of tea, tone light, while she looked over a quick report.

Marie’s smile visibly dimmed, but she nodded her head grudgingly. She had truly not continued to read the book for several days now, she knew that trying to have to read the unfamiliar way of writing would probably not get any easier if she did not get at least some regular practise in it.

“I will bring her down myself” Anya answered her former second immediately, ignoring Marie’s obvious reluctance to have to practise again. As the commander’s second Marie was not just privileged to a certain tutelage, but it was also her duty to acquire it as well.

Marie frowned visibly at the general, but Anya ignored the child’s reaction completely, while Lexa inclined her head in mute acknowledgement.

A healer knocking on the door to the commander’s quarters, broke up their shared breakfast moments later. Ontari stood up from her place immediately, sending Marie a little smile on her way.

Anya stopped the nightblood girl briefly “You are to stay in our rooms for the rest of the day, I don’t want to hear that you have been wandering around” she reminded the girl sharply.

Ontari subtly nodded her head, supressing the urge to roll her eyes at the Trikru woman. She had already been given the exact same order from her earlier that very same morning and she had absolutely no intention to wander through the tower, she internally wondered where she would want to go anyway.

Lexa stood from her place as well. Clarke had already been at her door in the morning, Gustus had not let the Skykru woman pass, but she knew that she would need to face the blonde at one point. She had scheduled a meeting with the ambassadors for the morning, expecting it to continue until midday at least. She had also already relayed a message to Titus that she wished to meet with the nightblood children at a later time in the day, wanting to see for herself how the children were cooping with the loss of their brothers and sisters.

“You are welcome to join me and the conclave later, Marie” the commander proclaimed in a kind tone. She thought it would do the blonde girl some good to spend time with the nightblood children as she had clearly befriended all of them.

Marie nodded in agreement immediately, mood already lifting at the prospect. She felt a flash of grief pass through her mind at the bitter realisation that so many of the nightbloods would not be there any longer. She had seen their bodies burn, but she was somehow sure that seeing the visibly smaller numbers of the conclave later, would be hard to face later.

She did not have much to time to ponder on her thoughts though, because as soon as Lexa had finished dressing in the regalia of the commander, Anya proclaimed that she wanted to get to the training pits now as well.

Marie sighed lightly under her breath, but smiled again when Risha also stood up, stretching herself like a cat would, before trotting to the door and waiting there with her tail wagging in obvious giddy anticipation to get out again.

“Will Talia continue her lesson without Ontari there?” Marie asked towards Anya, as they stepped out of the commander’s quarters.

Anya looked down at the child for a moment, contemplating her answer briefly “Reviewing what you have already been taught, can surely not harm” she settled on finally. It would probably not make too much sense to let them continue now without the nightblood girl’s presence, only to have to repeat the lesson later on. But she would remember to speak with the warrior about meeting both girls in their quarters tomorrow instead. She frowned slightly, when she spotted Marie jawing deeply next to her in the elevator “You are tired still?” she questioned the girl, scrutinizing her with the intent to assess if the girl might be getting ill with something. Marie did not appear noticeably pale and her gaze was clear and focused, so Anya assumed that the last days had just been more exhausting to the child, they should probably take it a little easier on the child in the remaining time before the army began its march.

Marie shrugged her shoulders slightly “Not really” she answered a little defensively. In truth, her body felt a little sluggish and heavy, although she was fairly certain that she had slept long enough.

Anya let it slide for now, turning her focus back ahead of them, once they stepped out of the tower. The streets around the tower were still relatively empty, most citizens had not begun their day just yet.

Marie gasped audibly when she spotted the remainders of Nymo’s pyre which had still not been cleared away yet. She faltered in her steps visibly, feeling as if she had been punched right in the chest.

Anya stepped closer to the child immediately, putting an arm around her smaller frame protectively. “It is alright, Marie” she reassured the girl at once in a soothing tone, brown eyes staring down at the girl in a mixture of worry and caring.

Marie looked up at the woman’s face with her grey eyes widened slightly, she swallowed forcefully past the lump lodged in her throat, nodding her head in acknowledgement of Anya’s words, leaning into her body slightly as well for a moment. She looked over at the remainders of the pyre once again, shuddering lightly, before she turned in Anya’s arms slightly, hiding her face against the woman’s midriff momentarily.

Anya followed Marie’s gaze, feeling herself confirmed in her assumption that the girl had in fact not truly understood yet that her friend had indeed died and not really begun to work through her impending grief for Nymo either. She tightened her arms for a moment around the girl, knowing that nothing she could say to the girl would make it any easier. So, she loosened her arms around Marie moments later mutely, nudging the girl back into the direction of the training pits without a word.

~ ~ ~

The training had passed without any notable incidences, Marie found it hard to concentrate on her lesson with Talia. Without Ontari there, she was the sole focus of the warrior and her mood darkened quickly at being reprimanded several times by the woman for her obvious lack of concentration and Marie soon began to feel a headache bug behind her temples. Risha had whined lightly in complaint, when her fingers had tightened several times in the wolf’s fur, biting back a scathing remark burning on the tip of her tongue.

She was truly relieved when Anya appeared behind the warrior, finally putting an end to their lesson and motioning her to stand and follow her to the stables.

Marie watched Risha turn from the stables with an audible huff and it seemed as if the wolf was stalking off almost sulkily, prompting a smile to lighten up her features again. Marie felt a slight flash of guilt at the realization that she had not once asked after the horse with the broken leg through the last days after Lexa had gifted it to her, she really hoped that the horse was doing better now.

Anya was stopped momentarily at the entrance of the stables, held up by another general from the Shallow Valley clan, wanting to speak to her. So, she sent Marie ahead with a curt nod, watching the child, until she left her field of vision in the stables.

Marie felt slightly calmer, breathing in the strong scent of the hay, being surrounded by the huffing sounds of several horses and she smiled brighter, when both the commander’s steed and Anya’s hazelnut mount as well, neighed at her in greeting, putting their enormous heads over their stalls.

She stepped over to the commander’s steed first, letting her fingers scratch lightly over the soft skin of its nose gently in greeting. She glanced over her shoulder at Anya’s horse, neighing louder now at her “Yeah, yeah, I’ll come to you in a moment” she called over with a light laugh “No reason to be jealous”.

Marie stretched onto her tiptoes slightly to be able to look into the stall, spotting the foal behind its mother “Hey, little one” she greeted it in a soft tone and smiled brighter, when the foal flicked its ears, looking up at her in clear interest “Come here” she tried to coax it to her in a kind tone.

She was startled slightly by a gruff voice from behind her “It will not listen to your commands yet”.

Marie whirled around quickly, smiling faintly at the burly stables master, as she inclined her head in mute acknowledgement.

Her expression turned a little guilty a moment later. The stables master was watching her intently and although Marie startled slightly, when the foal suddenly pressed its head against the girl’s fingers, still outstretched into the stall, he did not appear surprised at all.

“Your wounded horse is behaving itself exceptionally as well” he proclaimed nonchalantly, scrutinizing the girl. He was still trying to figure out what could be special about her, he could not deny that she seemed to have a weird connection to the horses, gaining their trust and obedience effortlessly. If the girl ever tired of being an active warrior, she could easily be entrusted with the care over the horses.

“It is getting better?” Marie asked, expression clearly hopeful. Although she was aware of the man’s penetration gaze resting on herself, she tried not to let it show how much it unnerved her at the moment.

The man inclined his head in mute agreement “I have never seen a horse with an injured limp standing still for days” he narrated to the child. He had personally watched carefully over the horse these past days and he was fairly certain that the horse would be able to recover, if it continued to behave in such a way.

Marie’s smiled brightened visibly and her grey eyes shone with joy for a moment; she laughed out lout when the general’s steed audibly trampled in place, huffing loudly, obviously trying to finally garner her attention. She caressed the foal one more time, letting her fingers glide over the steed’s head as well in passing, before she stepped over to the hazelnut horse “I am here, you really don’t have to be so jealous” she spoked loudly to the horse, unmindful of the stables master still watching her every move.

Anya’s footsteps were muffled by the straw covering the ground and her lips were tilted up in amusement, when she leaned against the stall of her own horse, watching Marie interact with her mount with fondness; she only curtly inclined her head towards the stables master.

“See, if you are ever getting a carrot or an extra hand of oat from me ever again” the general addressed the hazelnut horse with a shake of her head. The horse had only flicked its ears at her, but clearly preferred being caressed by Marie at the moment, not making an attempt to look over to her at all.

Marie giggled at the woman’s comment “Oh, I’ll give you some” she immediately reassured the horse, glancing up at Anya with twinkling eyes.

Anya huffed at the child’s answer, but amusement gentled her brown eyes visibly. “Come” she motioned the girl towards the end of the row of the stalls, where she knew the horse with the broken leg was being kept. She would need to attend a meeting soon and wanted to bring Marie back into the tower before that. Her horse huffed in clear complaint, when Marie followed her order and said goodbye to it a moment later.

Marie’s steps visibly quickened to get to the last stall and she glanced into it cautiously. She smiled brightly, when the horse flicked its two pairs of ears at her immediately and all of its eyes connected with her. The horse seemed calmer now, the panic was absent from its eyes and Marie lightly stretched again, slowly bringing her hand towards its head.

The horse reeled back slightly at first, before it returned to its original position.

“I won’t hurt you” Marie reassured in a soft tone, noticing Anya hovering behind her.

Anya watched the girl interact with the horse carefully, even separated by the stall’s door, the horse could easily bite off Marie’s fingers and she was prepared to physically haul the child back at any moment. It appeared thought as if the horse truly reacted to Marie’s words somehow, calming down immediately and letting itself be caressed by the child as well. She remembered that the girl had tried to convince her and Ontari that the wounded horse had stopped resisting the treatment from the stables master, when she had explained it to the horse. She had not really believed the girl now, convinced that the child had been exaggerating, but it seemed she had spoken the truth.

“See, I won’t hurt you?” Marie spoke softly to the horse “You have to be good and stand still until your leg heals, will you? For me?”

Anya could have sworn to see something akin to understanding pass between the horse and the child, before she cleared her throat and called Marie back. She needed to get back inside and bring Marie with her.

 

 

Chapter 212

Marie trudged behind Anya, dragging her feet visibly through the rows of stalls of the stable. She stopped shortly at the stalls of the commander’s horses, caressing them for a short moment again and also made another halt at the general’s hazelnut steed as well.

Anya rolled her eyes at the girl; her stalling was very much obvious and she had very little patience for such dallying. Her brown eyes narrowed at the girl and her lips thinned in growing irritation, but Marie seemed to sense that she was only a moment away from reprimanding the child verbally, because she stepped away from the stalls. Anya felt a little surge of regret at seeing the girl’s mood fall visibly, as her shoulders dropped as well and her expression blanked mostly.

The streets of Polis were visibly more crowded at this time of the day and Anya noticed quickly that Marie walked much closer to herself now, keeping herself stiff and straight, grey eyes flitting around themselves constantly, clearly on edge. She put a hand on the small of the child’s back in a reassuring mute gesture, guiding her back towards the tower physically.

Marie stiffened beneath Anya’s hand even further for a moment, before she exhaled forcefully, truly feeling the reassuring warmth of the woman’s palm resting on her back. She glanced up over her shoulder, craning her neck for a moment, while a shaky grateful smile flickered over her features.

Marie shuddered again notably, when she spotted warriors finally clearing away the remainders of the nightblood children’s pyres.

Anya lightly nudged the child forward, not wanting to give her the chance to stop now and possibly even break down in front of the tower as well. She was not really certain that escorting the child to the temple of the commander and leave her there on her own, was truly such a good idea at the moment. But she reasoned that the girl would at least have a task at hand to occupy her mind with. She doubted that Marie would in fact read anything, if she brought the child up to Ontari instead and the nightblood girl was supposed to be resting, hopefully sleeping even, so Anya discarded that brief idea immediately again.

Marie stopped in her steps, when she spotted Clarke across from them. Her eyes had still been hefted on the warriors cleaning up the ash of the pyres and her thoughts felt like all came crushing down, when she saw Clarke and the ash simultaneously.

Anya brows furrowed at the child suddenly stopping, she looked down at the girl in worry, following her intent stare for a moment. Her lips thinned when she spotted Clarke leaving the tower through the crowd.

“Are you alright to study the journal for now?” Anya asked, trying to divert Marie’s attention back to herself again.

Marie looked up sharply at the woman, sighing under her breath. She could imagine that her other option would be to accompany the general to the ambassador meeting, she should not bother Ontari if the older girl was getting sick after all. So, she nodded her head mutely after a moment of contemplation.

Anya smiled lightly in reassurance at the child, squeezing her shoulder, as she nudged her forward again towards the tower. She was slightly relived that Clarke had either not noticed their approach or had nothing to say to her at the moment and she could not see the blonde healer any longer, she guessed that the Skykru woman would have probably joined the healers on their rounds through the streets of the capitol.

“I will come to get you later” Anya informed Marie on their way towards the elevator.

“Okay…” Marie acknowledged absentmindedly, trying to uphold an unaffected front. She was weirdly aware of all the guards around the basement of the tower right now. The temple of the commander would at least offer her some privacy for her thoughts.

Anya watched the girl from the corner of her eyes with a frown, sensing that something was off about Marie, but being unable to put a finger on just what it was. She also knew that her presence was expected by Lexa at the meeting and she did not have time to force the girl to spell out her thoughts now. She hoped that the child would voice what was clearly bugging her later on.

“Stay in the temple until I get you” Anya repeated her order, when the elevator pulled to a stop underground.

Marie lightly rolled her eyes, but nodded her head in mute agreement. She did not look back, as she quickened her steps through the hall towards the temple beneath the tower. She was not surprised in the slightest to see two men, wearing the robes of the flamekeeper, stood guard in front of the doors, pulling them open for her without being prompted to.

Marie barely spared the both of them any glance, before she stepped inside. Her eyes shortly flickered over the mural drawn on the walls all around the temple, hearing the door being closed behind herself again.

She sighed under breath when she spotted the familiar book still placed visibly on a stand. Marie straightened her shoulders, picking up the book from it, before she let herself slide down against one of the walls, sitting down cross-legged with the book limply in her hands.

Marie did not know exactly why, but only a moment later, tears were blurring her sight and a sob bubbled from her lips. She discarded the book beneath herself, pulling her knees towards her chest, hugging them tightly, when tears began to slide down her cheeks.

She could not ban the memories from her mind right now, no matter how hard she tried. She could clearly remember Nymo smiling at her brightly, dark eyes twinkling with mirth, while they played their joke on Titus. It was replaced quickly by the memory of Nymo standing vigil at the funeral rites, having to be help up by Clarke, dark eyes clouded with fever and skin glistening with sweat.

She could hear the words Clarke had thrown at Lexa before Nymo’s funeral rites echoing through her mind, but what the blonde woman had not said, sounded even louder through her mind now. Seeing Clarke and the ash together, made Marie realize that Clarke might not have said it out lout, but the woman must believe it. It was her fault that Nymo had died. She had not even tried to heal her friend. She had listened to Lexa and Anya and their denial for her to even attempt to heal Nymo.

Marie felt a brief flash of anger at the both women pass through her mind. Nymo could potentially still be alive, if they had given her the opportunity to see her friend and try to heal him off his infected wound. But she forcefully banned it from her mind again as well. She knew that Lexa and Anya had not denied her with the intention to let Nymo die on purpose, but because they wanted to keep her protected at all costs. She felt a small warm feeling bloom in her chest for a moment at the thought, that she had become this important to the commander and the general.

Tears ran down her cheeks hotly and she began to lightly rock her body back and forth, sobbing loudly. “…all you fault!” echoed loudly through her mind. Clarke had directed the words at Lexa, but she should have screamed them at herself instead.

It was her fault, her fault that Nymo was dead. Her fault for not having succeeded in convincing Lexa and Anya to at least let try to heal the nightblood body. Her fault for not even having tried to slip away and get to her friend, trying to heal him without permission instead.

“Her fault…only her fault…her fault alone…” was the only thing Marie could think of anymore and she clawed her fingers into her arms, as she continued to rock back and forth, crying desperate bitter tears, while she lost all sense of her surroundings and time, lost in her mind for now.

~ ~ ~

Anya was relived when the meeting was finally called to an end for the day by the commander.

It was obvious that not all of the other ambassadors were satisfied with Lexa’s plan of action concerning the war. The commander did not wish to extinguish all of the Ice Nation population they encountered on their way towards Nia’s fortress. Most of them had openly disagreed with the commander’s orders and called out for the completely wipe-out of whole clan instead, nulling the chance of Ice Nation ever retaliating against the coalition.

But to their great displeasure, Lexa’s mind was dead set on that fact. She wanted Roan to have a chance to rule Azgeda different from his mother. The Ice Nation was a huge clan, which had its own value, like all other clans had as well, wiping them out in total would be a senseless waste and a potential loss of skills and resources additionally. Lexa had passionately explained to them again the merit of the coalition in itself, trying to convince them into what they could grow in a peaceful future. It was clear that the commander wished to integrate Ice Nation back under her flag, once the war was won and Nia killed and removed from her throne.

Roan himself had been given a chance to speak at the meeting and the prince of Azgeda had agreed easily with Lexa’s ideas. The commander and the prince had discussed beforehand in a private meeting just what Azgeda could offer the other clans in a form of recompense for all the sins his mother had perpetrated against the rest of the coalition.

It had still taken what felt like endless arguments back and forth between Roan and the ambassadors, to finally settle the ambassadors and get them to grudgingly agree to the commander’s plan, trying to kill as few people of Azgeda as possible on their way to Nia’s fortress.

Anya hoped that Marie had not bored herself overly much until now, the meeting had lasted much longer than she had predicted and she hoped that she did not have to search for the child now. She had not instructed the flamekeepers to keep the child inside of the temple after all, so they would have let Marie leave without even thinking about it further.

She stopped shortly on her way out of the throne room. Roan had been told to wait as well, because Lexa wanted to discuss with him in private what had been discussed now and maybe add a few details. She remembered that she had promised Marie that the girl could meet again with Roan and that she would be there with her as well.

The prince looked mildly surprised at the general’s request. “I have heard rumours about what happened to the child in my mother’s clutches” he answered, a slight grimace on his features “How bad was it?” he questioned with compassionate eyes. He still remembered the chirpy and kind girl, but he had not seen her with his own eyes since the girl had disappeared over half a year ago. He had been surprised to hear the guards gossiping about the fact that a blonde child had returned with Ontari.

“Nia tortured her in every sense” Anya pressed out through clenched teeth, a surge of hot anger clouding her mind momentarily “Death would have been a kinder fate”.

Roan looked honestly sorry to hear her confirm the rumours he had heard already. He could imagine what his mother might have done to the innocent and pure child. He had seen himself how his mother had broken several prisoners, all of them way older and stronger than the girl had been. None of them had lasted too long under his mother’s torture, so there had been no chance for the girl either. “If she wants to meet me, she is welcome to, of course” he answered the general’s original request.

Anya inclined her head curtly, already turning on her heels, wanting to get back to Marie as soon as possible now.

The way down from the throne room to the dungeons, appeared awfully long all of a sudden and she tapped her feet impatiently in the elevator, willing it to move faster. She had not had the best feeling leaving the child alone in the first place, but Marie was not a toddler and should be fine to stay on her own for a few hours and she had had the order to continue with the first commander’s journal, but Anya still felt a dark kind of anticipation coil in her stomach uncomfortably.

Her foreboding was confirmed, when she entered the temple of the flamekeepers. Marie was lying in front of one of the walls, curled in on herself, whole frame shaking and she could hear a distinct mumbling of “my fault” passing through the child’s lips. Anya could see the commander’s journal discarded next to the girl on the floor and she briefly wondered if Marie had even opened the book at all, but she pushed the thought from her mind, it hardly mattered at all at the moment.

She could hear the girl mumbling, coarse sobs passing through her lips as well, but the girl showed no reaction that she was aware of her footfalls echoing loudly off of the stone walls of the small room.

Anya crouched down in front of the child, expression pained and brown eyes riddled with regret. She should obviously not have left the girl alone at all before. She cursed herself an ignorant fool for assuming that the delicate child was dealing well with the loss of several of her friends in the span of only a few days.

She cautiously extended her hands towards the distraught child “Marie” she addressed her in a gentle, but clear and loud tone. But Marie did not show any kind of reaction at all. Anya’s brows furrowed in mounting worry, when the child did not react to being touched as well.

Without further thought, Anya bend down completely, scooping the child up from the floor and securing her in her arms. “Marie” she tried to address the girl again, lightly caressing over one of the girl’s cheeks. It was obvious that the child had cried for a long time, but her tears had obviously run dry by now. Anya sighed under her breath, when the girl seemed to look right through her, grey eyes widened and unseeing, not even blinking once. The girl did not seem to have a fever, but she was clearly catatonic. She felt her heart give a painful squeeze at the thought that she could have easily prevented all of this, if she had just followed her instincts and stayed with the girl instead.

The girl still kept on mumbling that it was her fault and Anya felt a shiver run down her back at the serene expression on the child’s face and the hopelessness colouring her almost broken tone.

She secured the girl’s body in her arms, turning on her heels and carrying Marie out of the temple with fast strides. She hoped that bringing her back into Lexa’s quarters, the rooms were the girl obviously felt the most comfortable in in the whole tower, would already help in easing her mind back into consciousness somehow.

Anya ignored the flamekeepers standing guard, she briefly contemplated asking them if they had heard since when Marie had been crying, but she went past them without saying anything. The thought alone prompted another surge of anger to course through her mind. If Marie was truly upset, the girl still rarely cried silently, so Anya somehow doubted that the men had truly heard nothing of the girl’s distress.

“Marie, can you hear me?” Anya tried again to address the girl in the elevator. She knew that it would take them a few moments until the ascended to the top of the tower and having the child so unresponsive was highly unsettling to her as well. If she though that shaking the girl physically would help anything, she would attempt that as well, but she still remembered that Abby had cautioned them to be gentle with Marie if she was lost in a panicked daze. The child did not appear to be panicked now, but she was clearly lost in the depths of her mind.

The girl still did not show any reaction and Anya felt her own mind beginning to panic as well. “You are safe now, little star, I have got you” she tried to whisper into the girl’s ears, craning her neck down slightly, so that her cheek rested on the girl’s forehead.

Anya only straightened herself again slightly, when the door of the elevator slid open again later finally on the top level of the tower. She quickly carried Marie towards the commander’s quarters, barking at the guards posted at the doors to alert their commander and summon the younger woman to her rooms immediately.

One of the guards opened the doors for her at once, while the other hurried down the hall to the elevator to carry out the general’s order. All of the guards entrusted with guarding the commander personally, had by now gotten to know enough of the commander’s second and their relationship to know that the commander would wish to know that something was wrong with the blonde girl at once and would also discard whatever duty she had been occupied with without further thought.

Anya went over to the huge bed at once, placing the girl in the middle of the mattress for now. She quickly divested herself of her weapons and heavy coat, before she sat down on the edge of the mattress, pulling the still unresponsive child into her lap, stroking over her back in silent reassurance.

Anya only noted now that Marie’s arms were tightly crossed over her chest and she could already see little red spots on the girl’s sleeves, where she had clearly opened her own skin. She needed a moment to forcefully loosen the girl’s hands from her upper arms, trying to somehow massage her clawed fingers back into softness.

She could fathom what Marie might be meaning with her mumbling of “my fault” and Anya felt her heart breaking a little more for the child. Lexa and she would clearly have a hard time ahead of them, trying to convince Marie of the fact that Nymo’s death had in no way been her fault at all.

“Little star” she continued to try and speak with the child, hoping that Marie somehow, even if only on the edge of her consciousness, was aware of her presence and listening to her words “Nothing has been your fault, my little star, you are safe now, you can come back now…please, Marie…”.

Anya did not know exactly just how long she sat on the commander’s bed continuing her constant reassuring words, caressing over the girl’s back gently, although she felt how her own fingers began to shake after a few moments and her eyes burnt with a sheen of tears, feeling the girl’s inner turmoil, as if it were her own.

Lexa rushed into her quarters only moments later and her green eyes were frantic, as she searched for Marie. She had instantly been alarmed at the guard’s brief report and she knew that Anya would never call her from her duties, if Marie’s condition would not truly warrant it.

“What happened?” she questioned immediately, stepping closer to the bed and banding a worried look with her former mentor.

Anya shook her head “I do not know for sure…” she broke off, when Marie began to mumble again.

Lexa’s expression fell visibly, when her mind connected the girl’s words with the previous days’ events.

“She is completely unresponsive” Anya said to the commander, voice tinted strongly with desperation.

Lexa nodded with a heavy sigh, she could see that with her own eyes after all. She kneeled down in front of her former mentor’s legs, bringing her hands to Marie’s head and she let her fingers frame the girl’s face gently, caressing over her cheekbones softly. “Little star, listen to my voice, only concentrate on my voice, you have to find your way back and come back to us, little star” Lexa tried another technique which Abby had tried to teach to them over their radio. “You are safe now, Marie, follow my voice, you are not at fault and you are safe, only concentrate on my voice”.

Anya remained silent, while Lexa attempted to pull Marie’s consciousness back out of the girl’s turmoiled mind. Her brown eyes intently scanned over the girl’s features, looking for any change, no matter how subtle and she let out an almost chocked sob of relieve, when the girl blinked once.

Lexa let out an audible sigh, when Marie blinked again, confusion clouded the girl’s features for the flash of a moment, before her grey eyes misted over with tears again and she let out a sobbed “I am sorry…” in a coarse tone.

“Sshhh” Lexa shushed the child gently, green eyes staring down at Marie swimming in deep emotions “Everything will be alright” she reassured the girl, wiping away some of the tears running down the girl’s cheeks softly.

Marie’s body twisted slightly and Lexa eased off a little bit, watching on with an aching heart, how Marie turned completely, pressing her face into Anya’s abdomen and her sobbing only increased as she slung her arms around the general’s midriff as well.

Lexa and Anya bandied a silent glance, both of them united in the relieve that Marie had come out of her dazed state again, but deeply worried that she had slipped into it in the first place, both of them would be there for the girl, trying frantically to piece her back together somehow. The commander rested a hand over Anya’s hand already lying on top of the girl’s back, squeezing down on her fingers slightly; they would be doing this together after all.

 

 

Chapter 213

It seemed to take an eternity for Marie’s sobs to die down and Lexa half expected that the child had cried herself to sleep. She was slightly surprised when Marie loosened her arms around Anya, sitting up again as well. The girl’s face clearly showed her exhaustion, if she was only emotionally exhausted or physically as well, Lexa could not assess like that, but the girl presented a pitiful image like that. Her grey eyes were red and puffy from all the crying, her cheeks crusted with tears and hair in complete disarray as well.

“I am sorry…” Marie croaked out again, voice notably hoarse and a pained flash passed over her features.

Anya kept her hands on the girl’s shoulders, supporting the girl lightly, brown eyes focused on Marie the entire time.

Lexa finally got to her feet as well, stepping over quickly to a table to fetch some water for Marie, who clearly needed something to sooth her throat. She poured a cup of cool water for the girl, while Marie rubbed at her eyes, grimacing visibly when she noticed her own crusted blood beneath her finger nails.

Marie pulled her hands down, narrowing her eyes at them with a frown, trying to scratch away some of the dried blood. She was not even aware that she had hurt herself somewhere, Anya’s fingers gently but firmly closing around her wrists and pulling them apart, stopped her attempt to remove the blood for the moment.

“Stop that” Anya reprimanded the girl in a calm tone, not letting go of Marie’s wrists yet “You can wash it off soon” she reassured her quickly. She did not know why Marie reacted so strongly to the sight of blood on her hands, but the girl had exhibited the same behaviour before already.

Marie looked at her sheepishly with a shuddering breath, still not having calmed down one hundred percent, her grey eyes riddled with guilt, feeling anything but strong at the moment.

Anya let go of the girl’s hands when Lexa presented a mug to Marie and the child greedily gulped down some of the cool liquid quickly.

“Don’t make yourself sick” Lexa cautioned in a gentle tone, sitting down on Marie’s other side on the edge of the mattress.

Marie lowered the cup immediately, her gaze turned to Lexa momentarily and her shoulders fell visibly, feeling that she had failed both of her mentors by breaking down once again.

“None of that now, Marie” Lexa intercepted the girl’s reaction, taking the cup back from her with one hand and placing it onto the small table standing directly by the bed. She brought the girl’s chin up with a gentle but insistent touch “What has happened, Marie?” she asked the girl intently, while her finger gently traced the girl’s jaw in a hopefully soothing gesture.

Marie shuddered immediately at the question, grey eyes closing for a moment “I…” she began, but broke off, breath hitching again.

Anya scooted slightly closer to the girl, placing a hand flatly onto her back, just below the girl’s shoulder blades “Breathe, Marie” she addressed the girl in a caring tone “You are safe now, we just want to know what has happened”.

Marie nodded slightly, taking a deep breath and trying to calm herself further. She looked between both of them shortly, when Lexa’s fingers let go of her chin and the commander’s hand rested on her shoulder instead.

Clarke’s words flashed through her mind again and her voice was deeply laced with resignation when she said “Clarke said to you that Nymo’s death was your fault, that you have let him die, choosing me above him…” she paused for a moment, grey eyes clouded with despair “…but she should have blamed me. I let him die…” her voice trailed off, feeling hollow all of a sudden.

Lexa immediately shook her head in the negative, feeling her heart ache for the girl, before she could say something though, Marie’s grey eyes flashed and the girl continued, voice surer now.

“Clarke has not said it out loud, but she has to believe it” Marie said, grey eyes burning with a bitter determination now “You could not have healed him, she knows that, but I could have … I COULD have … but I did not even try… I have let my friend die …” She felt like crying again, but her eyes burnt dry right now, she did not seem physically capable of shedding more tears at the moment.

“When I saw Clarke and the remainders of Nymo’s pyre, it all became clear” she added bitterly, lips pressed into a thin line, body trembling. Her urge to cry, felt as if screaming aloud might also be a viable option now and her hands balled into fists again “She is right … I have not done anything to help him!”

Lexa and Anya bandied a deeply worried glance over the agitated girl’s head, it was obvious that the child was entirely convinced from her string of argumentation now. It would probably be hard to get her to change her mind at all now.

Anya shook her head with a determined expression, she should have seen beforehand that seeing the remainders of the pyres of the nightblood children had clearly upset Marie. She somehow doubted that having stayed with Marie instead, would have truly helped. The girl would not have been likely to share her thoughts and could have simply worked out the same conviction in the privacy of her mind. She felt a deep surge of anger towards the blonde Skykru woman course through her mind. Marie had not truly considered that she may carry any real sense of guilt at Nymo’s death before witnessing the fight between Clarke Lexa.

“Marie, listen to me closely” Anya addressed the girl in an almost sharp tone, it was hard for her at the current moment to keep her feelings in check “You are not to fault for Nymo’s death in any way…”

Marie did not let the woman finish though, seemingly not caring at all that she was interrupting her at the moment “But I am” she retorted hotly “Clarke said it was your fault” she glanced over at Lexa shortly “but it was really only mine. Clarke…”

Lexa’s expression had turned definitely stricter now, as she hushed the girl “Marie, no” she shook her head in the negative. It was unexpected that the girl seemed to have frantically searched for a reasoning to remove the blame from her own person and placed it with herself completely instead, Lexa was not yet sure of how to feel about that either. If she had been angry at Clarke before for their fight, that stood in no comparison to how she felt about it now. “Anya is right, Marie, you are in absolutely no way to blame for Nymo’s death” she shook her head again sharply, when Marie opened her mouth to retort something.

“Let me finish” she said, tone having undertaken a strict layer “You are right that I am not to blame personally for Nymo’s death either, Marie, no one is to blame for it. Nymo died because of tragic circumstances. He was wounded in a fight with bandits, if you need to have a culprit for your friend’s death, it had been the bandits who had originally wounded him. No one could have foreseen that his wound would get this severely infected and that the Skykru medicine had not saved him. But you are under no circumstances to blame for his death.”

“But Clarke…” Marie spoke up loudly, tone slightly whiny now, while her grey eyes swam in a sheen of tears again. A part of her mind could see the logic behind Lexa’s argumentation, but a larger part of her mind refused to accept it as the truth just yet and let go of her feeling of all-encompassing guilt.

“No, Marie” Anya took over again, sensing that Lexa was hesitant to point out the most obvious reason for Clarke’s arguments “Clarke said what she knew would hurt Lexa most, she wanted to hurt her and dragging you into their fight had absolutely nothing to do with the fact that she does or does not believe that you are to blame for the boy’s death”.

“You think so?” Marie questioned, tone softer again as insecurities flashed over her features.

“I know so, little star” Anya reassured the girl quickly with absolute conviction in her tone “You have absolutely no reason to feel guilty for his death”.

Marie sighed deeply, lowering her eyes to her fingers again, her lower lip visibly trembling.

Lexa raised the girl’s chin again, reconnecting their eyes “You are allowed to grief his death without feeling guilty that Nymo has died, Marie. Are you to blame for every citizen of the capitol who dies, because you have not tried to heal them? Are you to blame personally for every death around you, because you have not been there to heal them?”

Marie’s grey eyes looked despaired as she met the commander’s piercing gaze “I feel like I should have tried to sneak away and at least tried to have healed him…” she admitted faintly, ignoring the commander’s loaded questions, although she pondered them internally. Could she take the blame for anyone dying around her, just because she potentially could heal them? Would a healer feel guilty like this when one of their patients died? Had Abby felt guilty when she had not been able to heal her mother for her?

Lexa sighed slightly, lips thinning a fraction, internally she was relieved that the girl had not tried. It would be almost impossible for them to keep Marie’s talent hidden from public knowledge if the girl would try to heal just anyone not minding their caution at all.

Anya’s expression turned slightly dark for a moment, imagining that the child had indeed managed to get to Nymo. No matter if she would have succeeded in healing the boy in the end, more people would have learned of her talent in consequence. If the girl had managed, they would have never been able to cover for her healing talent sensibly. If she had failed and tried hard enough, like she had already done for Clarke, she would have probably dropped unconscious, maybe even suffering another aneurism and they would not have been able to keep that a secret either.

“We are glad that you have not” Lexa answered the girl’s admission for both of them, having seen her own feelings reflected on her former mentor’s features. When the child visibly frowned at her, Lexa explained again, why they would have never been able to keep her talent hidden, if she had indeed tried to heal Nymo and had been witnessed at it.

Marie sighed again, her shoulders dropped again, when she let go of the rest of her internal resistance to believe into Lexa’s and Anya’s words. “I am sorry…” she offered faintly, as a blush rose to her cheeks.

Lexa’s expression had turned a lot gentler again by now, sensing that the girl at least for now had believed her. She knew that it would be foolish to assume, that the girl could not come back with the same argumentation at a later point, but for now, she had obviously calmed down. “There is no need for you to apologize” she reassured the girl in a soft tone, squeezing her shoulder gently.

Marie looked slightly miserable still, lower lip protruding in a pout “I caused another scene by breaking down” she complained whiny. She was aware that the woman had just returned to her quarters for her sake, Lexa had not even gotten rid of any part of the regalia of the commander, looking as if she had been summoned out of the middle of a meeting. She tentatively apologised to Lexa about it, but was silenced with a caring expression.

“I do not care about the stopped meeting, Marie, it does not matter now what it has been about” she reassured the girl in a decisive tone and after a short beat of silence she added heavily “I will leave behind any duty, if physical possible, if you do need me, there is nothing more important right now” her green eyes connected with Marie’s for long moments. She knew that there were certain things that she could not possibly do for the girl, but she would do anything in her power for her daughter now, bending the boundaries of her station if necessary, as well. Stopping a meeting for the girl would hardly crumble the coalition.

Awe flitted over Marie’s features visibly, before a slow smile began to enlighten her features “You really mean that?” she echoed in a small tone.

The corners of Lexa’s mouth pulled into a small smile as well as she nodded her head in agreement “Of course, you are my daughter now, Marie and you know that we are not going to lie to you”.

“Thank you” Marie said with a smile, leaning over to hug the commander strongly for a moment, deeply inhaling her calming scent. She looked over at Anya, after she let go of the commander and her expression changed into guilt again momentarily. She could only to a certain extend imagine in which condition the general must have found her. “I am sorry for worrying you” she exclaimed honestly, looking at the woman for forgiveness.

Anya sighed under her breath at the girl’s sometimes impossible logic, both of them would somehow need to instil in the child not to have to feel guilty for every last error she did. “There is nothing you have to be sorry for” she proclaimed in a strong tone and her brown eyes were warm as she stared at the girl, she was internally only relieved that the girl was obviously feeling much better already. She was aware that searching for someone to blame for her friend’s death would only have been a part of Marie’s grief and that there was more to come, but they would tackle one problem at a time.

Marie nodded faintly, but her brows were still creased slightly as she could not let go of a particular stubborn thought. “I should not be this weak still to break down like that…” her voice was filled with impatience with herself.

Both Anya and Lexa shook their heads at the girl.

“You are getting better, Marie, that is all that counts” Lexa intoned in a gentle tone.

Marie pouted slightly, but nodded her head in agreement.

“We shall wash off your blood” the commander said a moment later, standing from the bed and extending one hand towards Marie to grasp onto.

Marie nodded immediately, momentarily having forgotten about it “I had not meant to hurt myself” she said with a frown.

“I know” Lexa agreed without a sliver of doubt in her tone, it would turn into an even huger problem if the girl began deliberately hurting herself.

Anya watched the commander lead Marie into the bathroom with a mute deep sigh. She was all too aware that scenes like that could be repeating themselves in the future. The girl was obviously emotionally not as stable as they would have liked, it was expected after what she had suffered through, but it pained her deeply to have to watch the girl go through it without really being able to help her efficiently. If somehow physically possible, Anya would have given anything to take over the girl’s inner turmoil for her, gladly facing her demons for the child and sparing her some of her suffering, but she knew that all she and Lexa could do, was being there for her and trying to support her in any way.

She frowned slightly when she heard loud steps outside in the hall, it took only a moment longer, until she could distinctly make out Clarke demanding entrance into the commander’s quarters. She glanced over to the bathroom quickly, relieved to spot the door completely closed. She did not wish for Marie to physically have to face Clarke right now and Anya strode to the door to the commander’s quarters with fast strides, opening them and stepping out in the hall, before pulling the doors closed behind herself in only a brief moment.

When Anya turned around to face Clarke, her face showed an almost murderous expression.

“I heard that something was…” Clarke began to justify her presence.

“Be quite!” Anya seethed at the blonde woman in mounting anger.

Clarke looked visibly taken aback by the general’s open hostility for a moment. “I need to speak to Lexa” she proclaimed, tone notably lower and blue eyes shining a little insecure.

Anya’s lips thinned and her brown eyes glittered dangerously at the younger woman “You will not enter the commander’s quarters now” she barked at her in a deathly serious tone. Anya knew that Lexa would need to speak with Clarke at one point and with the war hanging so closely over their heads, it would certainly be better if they spoke now, but she also had a lot to say to the blonde healer “You will wait in the throne room” she proclaimed strongly, turning on her heel without waiting for any reaction.

Marie frowned slightly when she returned to the main room of the commander’s quarters with Lexa and Anya obviously had just returned inside as well.

Anya did not react to the girl’s frown physically, trying to reign in her risen temper again quickly. The girl had a tendency to take her bad mood personally sometimes and she surely did not wish to set her off somehow wrong now, Marie should not get the impression that she was in fact angry at her although she had said different. The child would surely not believe in anything she said again if that happened.

Marie jawed visibly a moment later, the whole episode had left her drained and she still felt a little hollow.

Lexa smiled gently at the girl, nudging her towards the bed. She had inspected the little wounds on Marie’s arms already and cleaned them out, they were luckily only very minor and would heal easily. “You should rest now” she said to the girl in a soft tone.

“I wanted to come with you to the conclave” Marie retorted, eyebrows creased slightly as the corners of her mouth turned downwards. She knew that they would fairly soon leave Polis towards Ice Nation, so she doubted that there would be many occasions still to spend time with the nightblood children.

“You can see them at another point” Lexa reassured the girl quickly “You are obviously exhausted, so rest”.

Marie laid down on the bed only with little reluctance, but she was glad when Lexa sat down beside her mutely, so that she could cuddle up to her for a moment.

Anya watched both of them with her expression gentled and her anger muted for now, it was still simmering beneath the surface though.

It took Marie only mere moments to drift off, once Lexa lowly began to hum the melody of the old lullaby to the girl under her breath.

 

 

Chapter 214

“Clarke is waiting for you” Anya proclaimed lowly, once she was positive that Marie was truly asleep.

Lexa frowned visibly, before stubbornness flashed over her features “I do not have anything to say to her currently”. She had no intention to do what Clarke had done and unleash her anger at the other woman.

“Then I have enough to say” Anya acknowledged, anger flashing plainly through her brown eyes, promising plainly that she would not care at all just how much she hurt the Skykru woman.

Lexa sighed under her breath. She knew that look on her mentor’s face well, she could not let Anya face Clarke on her own right now. “Call in Gustus to look over her” she ordered towards Anya instead, before her general could leave her quarters.

Anya rolled her eyes subtly, but nodded in mute acknowledgement, while Lexa carefully began to extract herself from beneath Marie somehow without waking the girl up in the process.

Gustus readily stepped into the commander’s quarters and his dark eyes showed his concern for the child plainly. He did not know exactly what had happened with Marie but he had heard the short report of the guard to the commander earlier though. “What happened with to her?” he asked lowly, eyes darting between the commander and the general.

Anya’s lips thinned slightly “Marie convinced herself that she alone is responsible for Nymo’s death because of something Clarke said” she narrated, irritation infused her expression.

Gustus sighed lightly, dark eyes compassionate “Poor child” he breathed out with a deep sigh. He knew first-hand how deeply compassionate the child was, remembering vividly how guilty she had felt after Sierra’s execution. He had seen and heard enough of what had been done to Marie at Nia’s hand to fathom just how hard it was for the girl to find her way back into a normal daily routine. She would probably need years to truly overcome all the traumas she had been forced through in such a short time.

In his opinion, the girl was exhibiting an extremely strong spirit already. She had somehow survived through the torture at Nia’s hand, but she would now need to learn to live with the scars of it from now on. “I will watch over her carefully” he reassured both women in a strong tone. He did not know if he would be able to calm the girl, if she woke or suffered a nightmare, but he would still try his best. He was not completely unpractised in handling upset children after all. The girl had showed before that she trusted and liked him, so he should be able to handle her for at least a short amount of time.

Gustus did not know just what Anya and Lexa were planning to say to Clarke and he almost regretted not being present to hear it either. He had heard the fight and what the blonde woman all had hurled at the commander and although he knew that the passionate leader loved the healer deeply, he doubted that it would be enough for a reconciliation between the pair right at the moment. The commander could not afford to be distracted by a quarrel with her lover during the upcoming war, it could very well cost her her own life in the end.

Lexa nodded curtly in acknowledgement, letting a hand brush gently over the girl’s forehead in a mute farewell gesture, looking down at the sleeping child for a brief moment in silence, before she stepped back from the bed and strode through the room and left her quarters, closely followed by her former mentor.

“I am just coming with you, so that you do not murder her” Lexa informed the general with a frown, tone infused with a warning. She may be out of sorts with Clarke at the moment, but she did not wish to see physical harm to befall her either.

She had already thought long and hard about how to proceed with Clarke last night. That Clarke was now in her mind basically the cause for Marie to suffer another breakdown, finalised her decision now though. Clarke had accused her of putting Marie above her duty and basically above anyone else’s wellbeing and she would be doing exactly that now. She knew that she would be hurting a part of herself as well with her decision, but she could fathom just how Marie would probably feel if Clarke returned to her quarters just like that.

Anya rolled her eyes at her former second, she would surely not have killed Clarke. She knew too well how important the blonde Skykru woman was to Lexa to kill her and that doing so would hurt the young leader, no matter if they reconciled as lovers or not. She had already threatened the girl in the medical bay of Arkadia not to ever harm Lexa or Marie before. Clarke may not have physically hurt either of them now, but she had hurt the both of them deeply with her words, which was something Anya would neither forget nor forgive quickly.

“I would not have hurt you by killing her, Lexa” Anya reassured the younger woman gravely, brown eyes connecting with the familiar green orbs of her previous second.

Lexa looked at her former mentor with mute acknowledgement passing through her eyes, it spoke much of the depths of their connection that the general would put her own feelings into such a high consideration in this moment. Both of them were equally fiercely protective of Marie now and although her own feelings of anger towards Clarke were decreased by the deep love she felt for the other woman, she knew that Anya’s need to protect Marie and retaliate on the child’s behalf would not be lessened by such feelings. She briefly contemplated letting Anya go alone to meet with Clarke, but she knew that she needed to speak with her as well, prolonging the inevitable would not do either of them any good.

Her emotions still felt much stronger and somehow out of her control, bubbling dangerously close to the surface, after having to witness Marie suffer through such an extreme breakdown once again, but Lexa barely tried to get them reigned in now either. She absentmindedly thought that Clarke deserved to visibly see just how much she had hurt her during their one-sided fight and what consequences the fight had had for Marie additionally.

Lexa was fairly certain that the guards would have escorted Roan back into the floor for the political prisoners by now and she dearly hoped that Titus would have already left the throne room as well. The flamekeeper had been visibly irate enough that she just called an end to the meeting like that after hearing that something was wrong with Marie. She could almost vividly imagine just how the confrontation between her and Clarke would play out with the flamekeeper present and she truly hoped that Titus would not learn of her previous fight with the blonde either. The flamekeeper had never warmed at all towards Clarke, still seeing her close connection to her as a threat to her rule as the commander and he would only feel confirmed in his fear that Clarke would divert her attention from her duty and make her weaker as a consequence.

~ ~ ~

Clarke waited for Lexa in the deserted throne room, anticipation rising with every moment which passed without the other woman showing up. The halls in front of the throne room had fallen silent long ago and she felt impatience rise in her mind, pondering if returning to the commander’s quarters would yield to anything.

She had heard from a guard that something had happened with Marie, but she had not heard anything specific about the girl’s condition either. She did not think that they would have let the girl train already, agreeing that the girl should rest until the army left Polis, so, she had no idea how Marie might have gotten injured. The girl could have of course had some sort of accident or had been attacked by someone, but Clarke had not seen Laurel being summoned either, so it did not appear as if Marie needed the attention of a healer.

She had pondered all night on how to best apologize to Lexa, practising a pre-formulated speech until she knew it by heart. She knew that she had gone too far in their fight, but it deeply worried her that Lexa had refused to see her until now. It somehow did not feel as if that was the brunette’s usual course of action, from how she had gotten to know the commander, the young leader usually immediately solved confrontations. The resignation she had spotted within the depths of her green eyes, when she had tried to address the woman before, felt as if Lexa’s decision had already been made and Clarke could only pray now that the woman would even be willing to listen to her apology at all.

Clarke had been completely unprepared to be faced with the irate general a few moments ago and she had been absolutely caught off guard by the pure anger radiating off of the Trikru woman. If she had thought to have been faced with a dangerous and threatening version of Anya before, her brown eyes burning right through her like that with almost hatred had brought a new definition to the scariness of the general.

The long moments seemed to stretch into eternity and Clarke begun to fear that Lexa would not even show up at all. She was not sure if Lexa had even been aware of her presence at her door earlier or if Anya had just wanted to continue her rant in silence, away from Marie. She wondered what truly had happened to the girl, she was certain that Anya’s extremely bad mood directed towards her own self and Marie’s condition were somehow connected although she failed to figure out how during her wait.

She almost felt relieved when she heard footsteps echo loudly through the hall in front of the throne room again, straightening herself in anticipation. For a brief moment, she feared that it was only Anya on her own and that Lexa had refused to speak with her at all again and she held her breath in anticipation until the doors to the throne room were finally opened again.

~ ~ ~

Despite her intention to let Clarke see the whole extent of her feelings, Lexa felt a hard unbreachable façade settle over her features out of pure routine. It was almost an automatic reaction by now, instilled into her for the last years that the throne room was no place to show her feelings, but rather a place where she needed to be the strong and fierce commander, not allowed to broadcast her feelings openly, having to guard them in reasonable fear that they would be twisted against herself and exploited later. With a certain flash of sadness, Lexa realised that it somehow felt now as if she was truly anticipating the same to happen being faced with Clarke.

Lexa steeled herself again, feeling the mask of the commander slip into place fully, she had absolutely no intention to argue with Clarke at all. Internally a small fraction of her feared that she would budge, if she gave the blonde the chance to truly argue with her again. But she had made up her mind already, she could not sensibly allow Clarke back into Marie’s vicinity like that, not trusting her any longer not to hurt the girl, even if unintentional. A part of her was convinced that Clarke had not intended to actually cause the girl any harm, but the fact that she had, outweighed that by far in her mind. If she truly wanted to be a mother for the girl, she was in fact required to put the child’s wellbeing above anything else, only restricted by what her station as the commander could never allow, even if it meant hurting herself in the process.

She let herself feel Anya’s presence only briefly behind herself and she could also sense the anger radiating off of her former mentor quiet strongly, while she let a fraction of her own anger resurface on purpose.

Lexa strode right through the opened doors into the throne room, her eyes flitted minutely through the room, fortunately only finding Clarke present and the room deserted completely otherwise.

“Lexa, I…” Clarke immediately began to speak, blue eyes showing a whirlwind of emotion and she seemed genuinely relieved to see her at all, voice laced deeply with feelings.

Anya glowered darkly at the blonde healer, hand almost casually resting on one of her daggers in a clearly threatening gesture. She may have already promised Lexa not to lethally wound the blonde, but she had said nothing about not hurting her at all, simply to emphasise her point.

Lexa raised a hand curtly, silencing the other woman quickly, jaw visibly clenched and green eyes flashing angrily, before she opened her mouth, thinking solely of Marie for the moment “You were correct in one thing, Clarke” she said in a frosted tone staring intently at the blonde woman “I will put my child’s wellbeing above anything else from now on, even if it means making a hard decision for myself. I can no longer trust you around Marie, Clarke, which ultimately means that I cannot trust you around myself either…”.

Internally, she added “…at the moment”, a sad part of herself wished, that they would have the chance to work out their differences at some point. But she knew that she could not let herself be distracted in the upcoming months, she may be causing her own death, if she was. Lexa knew in the depths of her heart, that her feelings for Clarke would not simply vanish like that, but it was her own choice to act on them or not and she was actively choosing against acting on them for now. After the Mountain, she had resigned herself to the fact that Clarke and her would never have a chance at love and it seemed that she had been foolish to allow herself to believe otherwise.

Clarke gasped audibly at the young leader’s words. She could see the grim determination burning in Lexa’s green eyes and she felt her heart being teared to tatters at the rejection radiating off of the brunette. Her eyes which normally looked so gentle and expressive, only truly showed anger now and maybe a hint of regret at how things had played out between them. She briefly wondered why Lexa could not trust her around Marie any longer, but she pushed the question from her mind. She had known beforehand that dragging the child into the argument between them, had been a grave error on her part and a small part of her had also feared that Lexa would not easily forgive that.

The rational part of her mind had, even during their fight, been very aware that Lexa was also not to blame for Nymo’s death, but she had been too angry to think straight, desperately wanting to hurt the young leader, not caring in that moment about how to achieve that. If possible, she would go back in time and take everything back which she had said, but this would never be possible.

After she had returned to Polis with the commander, still not really on speaking terms, the young leader had given her time, respect and space, only caring that she was safe and not demanding anything in return. A small part of herself realised that she had unintentionally destroyed a huge part of their connection during their fight.

She had seriously expected Lexa to at least hear her out, hoping that the deep love which connected them would be enough to ease them back together. She had expected it to be difficult, convinced that Lexa would need time to fully trust her again. But she had obviously underestimated the hurt her words had truly caused the commander.

“Lexa…” she tried to interrupt the brunette woman, feeling her eyes misting over with tears, as her voice broke slightly. To her utter dismay, the commander seemed to swallow only once, before she clenched her jaw, her expression had turned completely blank a second later again.

“You are welcome to stay within the tower and continue your work as a healer here” Lexa continued, not reacting in any visible form to Clarke’s obvious sorrow “If you insist on joining the army into Azgeda, you will travel with the rest of Skykru” she added after a second. She only met Clarke’s pained gaze for a short moment later, turning on her heel and striding from the room as quickly as she had come. She could hear Clarke trying to follow her and Anya obviously stepping right in front of her and intercepting her. She stepped out of the throne room, feeling her breath shudder painfully in her chest. Although she was convinced that she had made the right decision, it still pained her deeply.

~ ~ ~

Anya watched Lexa leave from the corner of her eyes, stopping Clarke physically from following the commander, her brown eyes glowering threateningly at the younger woman.

“Lexa might not have much to say to you, but I do” the general seethed at the healer. She was unfaced completely by the display of tears in her blue eyes, the memory of Marie being completely catatonic too fresh in her mind to now be able to muster much empathy for the blonde healer, briefly remembering the sheen of tears in Lexa’s green eyes in the medical bay of Arkadia, just after Clarke had woken and immediately used Lexa’s lowered defences to lash out at her former second.

“What did she mean with me harming Marie, I did not harm her?!” Clarke interrupted the Trikru woman, desperation making her braver for the moment, ignoring Anya’s obvious anger.

But Clarke had been utterly unprepared for Anya’s austere features turning even darker at her question, brown eyes blazing visibly with barely contained anger. “I have warned you before about ever attempting to hurt Lexa or Marie, you may not have hurt them physically, but you did hurt the both of them, deeply” Anya barked out hotly, stepping closer to the blonde healer.

Clarke winced visibly at the remained of their long past conversation in the medical bay of Arkadia. Lexa and Anya had both already deeply loved Marie back then and if anything, their love for the girl had only grown since then; she suddenly felt extremely shabby for having tried to wound Lexa with probably the only thing where she truly allowed herself to feel and be herself.

“The words, you have hurled at Lexa during your ridiculous fight, have caused Marie to believe that she alone has to feel guilty and responsible for her friend’s death” Anya informed the younger woman in a dark tone, expression hard and unforgiving.

“I have not said…” Clarke tried to justify herself with a frown, but was silenced by the general immediately.

“If you value your tongue, I would stay silent in your shoes now!” Anya thundered directly into the younger woman’s face “Lexa may still care for you too much to allow me to kill you, but I can cause you significant harm without killing you” she added, brown eyes gleaming dangerously.

Clarke shuddered at the open threat and she did not doubt for a second that the general would make it true either. She was also not be stupid enough to assume that she would be able to protect herself against the Trikru woman either.

“You have blamed Lexa for his death, telling her that she let the boy die, not doing anything” Anya eluded, fingers tightening around the handle of her dagger visibly “Lexa could not have saved Nymo, but Marie might have been able to and according to your logic, Marie concluded that she let him die, causing her to have another breakdown”.

Clarke winced visibly, regret flashing over her features openly at the general’s words. She had already been a witness to one of the child’s breakdowns before and she knew how unsettled Lexa and Anya had been by it back then, all of them hungering for revenge against Nia. If she truly had caused the girl to breakdown again, it was no wonder at all, that the general and the commander both did not wish her within Marie’s vicinity any longer. The realisation of what her words had caused felt like a physical punch through her heart and she gulped audibly, feeling her heart drop into her stomach.

“If you ever hurt Lexa or Marie again, no matter how, even the commander will not be able to save you then” Anya threatened darkly, stepping even closer, so that her breath ghosted over Clarke’s face notably, prompting the younger woman to stumble back slightly “You will not be welcomed on the top floor of the tower any longer and you will only be allowed to stand in meetings if specifically ordered to” she proclaimed hotly, staring down the younger woman for a moment.

 

 

Chapter 215

Lexa hesitated in front of the closed doors to the throne room for a moment. A part of her deeply longed to return inside and take back what she had just said to Clarke, but she knew that she should not, she had to prioritise Marie now.

She felt a deep sadness engulf her senses as the realisation settled into her mind that she had efficiently broken things off with Clarke now.

She briefly contemplated entering the elevator and seeking out the conclave now, but she had fortunately not giving an exact time of her planned visit to the flamekeeper and Lexa doubted that she could hold herself together now, if she was physically reminded right now of the loss of the five nightblood children, seeing their numbers reduced so cruelly.

So, instead Lexa signalled her intent to return to the top floor of the tower and she cursed herself a sentimental idiot when she felt tears burn in her eyes, feeling her heart shudder painfully in her chest as well. She could allow herself to analyse Clarke’s reactions to her words in the privacy of her own quarters, as she could not have exhibited weakness in the throne room only moments ago.

She entered her quarters only moments later, trying to swallow past the lump lodged in her throat. If she had thought that she would feel better after having officially ended her relationship with Clarke, she was sorely mistaken. Lexa felt as if she had just broken off a huge part of her own heart in the process as well.

Her green eyes immediately went over to her bed, spotting Marie still asleep in it, with Gustus sitting on a stool right next to the bed. She briefly met the burly guards gaze, feeling the rest of calm façade crumble completely.

Gustus watched the young leader intently, frowning slightly at the open exhibition of sorrow on her features. He wondered if the blonde Skykru woman had fought again with the commander and protectiveness flashed over his own face.

Lexa swallowed again, getting rid of the shoulder pauldron, red sash and her long coat, feeling as she was threatening to suffocate under the weight of her station and its regalia right now. “Clarke’s allowance to enter at her will is retracted” she proclaimed, voice thick and green eyes pained. She felt even weaker for letting Gustus see her in her current state of mind.

Gustus nodded with a slightly cautious expression, the commander did not have to spell out what this change of order meant and he found the blonde woman more than a little infuriating, always pushing beyond the rules, disregarding their traditions and cultures with almost every step, he knew how much she meant to Lexa and he could see plainly how the young woman was suffering under the weight of her own decision.

He stood up from the stool, briefly looking down at Marie, fortunately the child had slept without any kind of disturbances so far. He went over towards the commander and in an uncharacteristically show of support, he squeezed the younger woman’s shoulders reassuringly. The sheen of tears glistening in her green eyes felt slightly painful to himself as well. “She slept peacefully so far” he said into the heavy silence, only broken by the commander’s audibly shuddering breathing “I shall return to my post” he added, letting his hands rest on Lexa’s shoulders for a moment longer.

Lexa nodded mutely, not trusting her own voice not to break were she attempted to speak at this moment. She watched him leave in silence, stripping down to her pants and her undershirt quickly, before she stepped over to the bed.

Lexa looked down at the sleeping child and she felt a flash of warmth carry through her mind, while she bent down and pressed a light kiss to Marie’s forehead, swiping a stray strand of hair out of her face as well.

The girl’s mouth pulled into a light smile, sighing lightly under her breath at the gentle caress, moving the slightest bit under the furs, before she settled again.

Lexa felt her heart giving a painful squeeze as her gaze flitted to the other side of the bed and by now familiar sight of blonde wild locks distributed around the pillows and blue eyes looking up at her lovingly, flashed up in front of her eyes unbidden. A bout of fresh tears burnt harshly in her eyes and Lexa’s breathing shuddered even stronger now.

She stepped back from the bed, walking into the bathroom quickly, feeling that she was only moments from losing control over her feelings and breaking to pieces. She did not know, if she would ever be able to piece her heart back together now though, nor if she even should attempt to.

Lexa stood in front of the sink, looking at her complexion in the mirror hanging above it. Although she had not shed any tears yet, her eyes were slightly glassy and red-rimmed already. She could see the first tear rolling down her cheek unbidden and it seemed to prompt her to lose the reign over her feelings completely, as sorrow consumed her mind.

Her hands desperately held onto the sink, trying to hold herself upwards, as the first sob escaped past her lips and no matter how hard she clenched her jaw, she could not keep her grief at bay right now.

Lexa had not truly allowed herself to grief for the fallen nightblood children, her mind had processed it, but only on a logical level, knowing that she needed to send out more flamekeeper scouts, searching even harder for other potential successors to her station.

She had seen the pain of their deaths in the faces of the surviving nightblood children, as well as in Marie’s. But Lexa had only briefly allowed herself to feel even a fraction of this pain during the long hours of the vigil during the funeral rites, needing to remain controlled and strong even then.

She had also not wished to grief for them in front of Marie, not intending to add to child’s own sorrow. As the fall-out with Clarke had already began then, Lexa had bottled up all her feelings, pushing them to the far-end of her mind.

Even within her own mind, Lexa had not been able to escape the guilt of so may of her proteges dying. The past commanders had plainly reminded her last night that she was a failure at protecting the conclave. All of them had been groomed with the mantra of “love being weakness” and that “being the commander meant to be alone”, so she had found none understanding among their ranks for her fallout with Clarke either.

But added together now with the bitter pain of breaking things off with Clarke, everything came crushing down all at once and she was powerless to contain the sounds of her inner turmoil any longer, nor did she had enough strength left to try.

~ ~ ~

Marie woke with a frown, she was confused initially why she had been asleep, obviously in the commander’s quarters, during daytime at all. She could see the sun shine into the room plainly. Her frown deepened when the memories of what had transpired rushed back to the forefront of her mind and she quickly looked around the rooms for Lexa and Anya.

Her brows furrowed in confusion, when she failed to spot either of the two women and her lips turned downwards at the feeling of loneliness flashing through her mind briefly.

She frowned again, when she thought to hear sounds of someone sobbing and her grey eyes narrowed at the door to the bathroom, just now realizing that it had not been closed completely. Marie stood from the bed quickly, a memory of Anya crying on the floor of the bathroom weeks ago flashed up in her mind.

Marie pushed the door to the bathroom open cautiously and she stopped for a moment at the sight. She felt her own lips tremble at seeing Lexa so obviously sad like that. She did not know why, but seeing the woman like this, was alarming on a certain level and Marie could not remember having seen the strong leader like this before.

“Mommy…” she addressed Lexa with a slightly shaky voice, hesitating in front of her momentarily, grey eyes staring up at her emphatically.

Lexa whirled around slightly and she took in a shuddering breath at spotting the girl in front of her eyes. It was obvious that seeing her like this was frightening Marie by the girl’s expression and hesitation to physically touch her.

“It is alright…” Lexa forced the words passed her lips, not entirely believing into them right at this moment herself.

Marie’s expression seemed to fall completely and her shoulders hunched visibly “I … I am … I am sorry … I did not mean to make you sad …” she apologized, grey eyes big and honest.

Lexa shook her head, wiping at her tears quickly, trying to get her breathing back under control as well. Her breathing shuddered again, when Marie stepped closer to her and wound her arms wound her midriff. “It is not your fault” she reassured the girl, somehow keeping her tone calm against the inner whirlwind of her feelings.

Marie looked up at the commander with a slight frown.

“Are you feeling better now?” Lexa asked the child calmly, hoping to somehow divert her attention from herself again. She not intended for Marie to see her like this at all.

Marie nodded cautiously, grey eyes intently staring at Lexa “What happened?” she questioned almost hesitant.

“Nothing with which you need to concern yourself with, Marie” Lexa evaded the question, letting go of the sink and letting her arms pull Marie into a firmer envelope.

Marie was dissatisfied with the answer, sensing that the commander was unwilling to tell her something important, but she hugged Lexa right back, hoping to somehow ease some of her obvious pain. She wondered if the commander was grieving for her lost nightbloods as well and she thought that to be a likely answer. “You are allowed to grieve too” Marie said compassionately, echoing the woman’s earlier words.

Lexa paused at the child’s words, swallowing heavily, as she felt more tears well up in her eyes. She knew that she would be hypocritic if she used the argument with Marie, but did not apply the same standards to herself.

Marie stretched onto her tiptoes, catching a tear rolling down the woman’s cheek with a gentle finger “You do not have to be the strong commander now” she voiced softly, looking up at Lexa with honest grey eyes.

Lexa was slightly taken aback by the child’s words. She had been drilled since early childhood in what it meant to be the commander and she very rarely thought of herself removed from her station. She was always the commander, but the girl was correct that she could allow herself this brief moment of weakness.

She tightened her arms around the child, speechless for the moment, placing her chin lightly on Marie’s head, simply allowing herself to just be for the moment. Not thinking about the war or her duties of the commander, but instead only feeling the girl’s warmth warming her heart again slowly, even allowing her sorrow to pass through her mind again, before finally accepting what had occurred during the last past days and storing her grief back into the corners of her mind, where it usually rested.

Marie sensed that she was not required to say anything right now, but she still mumbled “love you, Mommy” against Lexa’s shirt and felt the commander tightening her arms around herself in a mute acknowledgment.

~ ~ ~

Anya returned to the commander’s quarters shortly after having spoke with Clarke. She had remained in front of the throne room just for a moment, making sure that the blonde girl would not attempt to follow her back to Lexa now, but it seemed that her words had sunken into her thick skull.

She frowned when she failed to locate Lexa and Marie. She had half expected to find the commander lying in bed together with the girl. The door towards the balcony was closed, so she knew that Lexa had not gone outside either.

Anya checked the bathroom instead and she leaned against the doorframe for a silent moment, simply observing Marie and Lexa with each other. The child had obviously not noticed her approach, but Lexa’s green eyes minutely flicked up to her, their gazes bandying.

It was obvious that her former second had cried bitter tears before, her green eyes still appeared slightly reddened, but Lexa seemed to regain a hold over her emotions in front of her eyes at the moment.

For the brief flash of a second, Anya felt reminded of a slightly similar scene, now several years in the past. After Lexa had discovered Costia’s head at her bedside, she had held the young commander for hours, while she had wallowed in her grief. She had even taken Lexa back into her own room, letting her sleep with her in her bed instead of the commander’s quarters, holding her through her night terrors, desperately trying to somehow console the heartbroken young woman. It had continued for several days, each morning Lexa somehow pulled herself back together, executing her duties mostly as if nothing out of the ordinary had occurred, but she broke down each night. Anya had been there to catch her, when it happened. On the one particular morning, which she was reminded off now, Lexa had spoken alone with Titus on the balcony and Anya had seen the woman almost flee to the bathroom, crying bitterly again, while Titus had just left. She had followed Lexa and offered her consolation once again, but in front of her eyes, the commander’s features had changed, the light had dimmed in her green eyes, replaced by cold and hard orbs instead. She had tried reaching out to her former second, but had been told to pack her things instead, being sent from the capitol to the outskirt of Trikru, never to return to Polis if not specifically ordered to.

Being reminded of that scene, Anya internally prayed that Lexa would not shut herself off again now, but it seemed that Marie had an immense impact on the commander. Instead of coldness replacing the sorrow in the young woman’s eyes, it was pure love now as she gazed down at the child in her arms and Anya felt deep relieve course through her mind. A slight part of her chided herself for even thinking for a brief moment that Lexa might choose to distance herself from Marie in an attempt to escape her own pain. She was aware that Lexa had basically been presented with the choice between her love for Marie and her feelings for Clarke, so the decision was bound to have hurt Lexa deeply as well. The fact the Lexa had even put Marie’s wellbeing above her own feelings truly confirmed just how far her former second was willing to go for the child’s sake.

She cleared her throat audibly, alerting Marie to her presence as well. The child loosened her arms around Lexa quickly, a look of startlement flashed over her face and she seemed relieved to only spot Anya and no one else.

Marie looked over at the general with a sheepish expression. “I have not made Lexa so sad” she felt the need to justify herself.

Anya snorted under her breath at the girl’s childish reaction, while Lexa looked down at the girl with furrowed brows.

“Do not feel guilty for that, Marie” Lexa admonished the girl with a frown. Marie feeling guilty for something else was truly the last thing they needed right now.

Marie nodded her head with a slightly sheepish expression, a faint blush coloured her cheeks.

“Are you feeling tired still?” Lexa asked the girl kindly, brushing a lock of blonde hair out of her face.

Marie shook her head with a slight smile, she truly felt much better and rested already.

Lexa looked down at the girl for a moment in silent contemplation “You can still accompany me to the conclave then” she offered in a light tone. She was not entirely convinced that doing so, was a good idea, but it was probably the better option than taking Marie to meet with the Skykru delegation later in the day.

Marie nodded immediately as a bigger smile enlightened her features.

“We can have lunch together with them” Lexa proclaimed, she knew that it would not be long until food would be served to the children. She had ordered Titus to let the conclave off of their lessons for a few days, at least until Aden and June had healed, offering some time for the children to grief their fallen brothers and sisters in privacy as well.

Anya said that she would go and check in on with Ontari in the meantime and go down for a little bit to the training pits as well. “Behave yourself” she directed at the girl, before she left in a slightly strict tone.

Marie frowned at the leaving woman’s back “I will” she called behind her, a pout on her lips.

Lexa smirked slightly at the child’s grey eyes glaring lightly behind Anya sulking. “Do not mind her” she placated the girl with amusement dancing through her green eyes, while she put her boots back on and slipped on a warmer shirt as well. She motioned Marie to do the same as well. There was no need for her to wear the regalia of the commander to see the conclave.

Marie’s mood truly seemed to have improved and Lexa let herself be contagioned with it, letting a slight smile take over her features as well.

Marie’s smile dimmed notably when her gaze fell on Clarke’s drawing supplies distributed on one of the tables “When is Clarke coming back?” she asked. She knew that the woman had stayed with Nymo for his death and slept in another room last night after their fight, but she was positive that she would return to the commander’s quarters soon enough. She frowned slightly when she spotted a flash of pain pass over Lexa’s face momentarily.

“Clarke will not live here any longer” Lexa relayed to Marie honestly, closely watching the girl’s reaction. She had seen the way Marie had looked at the drawing supplies at the table and she felt confirmed in her decision that Marie would not be doing well in close proximity with Clarke.

Marie’s frown deepened a little in thought. She could fathom what the woman’s words meant and she realised that Lexa had obviously chosen not to forgive Clarke. That would probably be the reason why Lexa had been so sad earlier. “I am sorry…” she said towards Lexa after a moment with empathic grey eyes “You are sad because of her…”.

Lexa sighed deeply, shaking her head slightly at the girl “It does not matter right now” she reassured the girl, pushing the flash of sorrow from her mind forcefully “Now, come on” she addressed her, holding out a hand for Marie to take and leading her out of her quarters.

~ ~ ~

The atmosphere inside of the room of the conclave was rather solemn. It was obvious that the children had not spent their hours playing, like they usually would if they were offered free time.

Aden and June had somehow moved two beds together and the three younger children were cuddled up to them, while Aden read a book to them.

The sandy-haired boy fell silent immediately at Lexa’s entry and his sadness was reflected on all of the other’s faces.

Marie looked up at Lexa unsurely for a moment, before she followed her instinct and stepped over to the bed “What are you reading?” she asked curiously, smiling slightly at all of them.

Lexa followed after Marie and sat down on the edge of one of the beds and shortly let her gaze flicker over all of the children.

“Harry Potter and the philosopher’s stone” Aden answered with a slight smile that did not quite reach his blue eyes.

“Lexa began to read that to me as well” Marie retorted with shining eyes “How far are you?” she added another question, climbing into Lexa’s lap without further thought.

Lexa encircled the child with her arms, pulling her into a more comfortable position “You can continue until lunch is served” she addressed Aden, the blonde boy seemed to obviously expect for her to put a stop to their quite little moment.

Aden inclined his head with a fleeting smile, adjusting his grip on the book “Chapter Halloween” he answered Marie’s question before continuing to read out loud at Boo’s insistent prompting “Malfoy could not believe his eyes on the next morning…”

Lexa watched the children with each other, feeling Marie settle against her upper body comfortably. She was highly thankful that Aden and June were obviously taking care of Boo, Kyla and Ryno. She was certain that the nightbloods would stick together during her upcoming absence as well. She direly hoped that it would be a long time until these children had to face off each other, competing against their brothers and sister for the mantle of the commander.

 

Chapter 216

Marie listened intently to Aden’s reading, a smile curved her mouth happily, when the sandy-haired boy began to include variations in his voice, altering it in a different way for every character having a part in a dialogue.

“You got to make Draco more edgy” Boo interrupted the boy, dark eyes demanding.

“Yeah” Ryno chimed in eagerly “You made him more arrogant before” his tone carried a hint of accusation that Aden seemed to have tamed his style of reading.

“You missed the sneer” Kyla added in the softest tone of all three of them, blue eyes looking up at Aden, from her place curled up with June.

Aden held up his hands in mock surrender, pulling a slight giggle from the three younger children “Alright, alright…” His blue eyes flashed slightly, before he continued, making the characters clearer, exaggerating the variations again like he had done before the commander arrived.

Marie giggled freely at the nightblood boy’s interpretation of Snape’s character, face lighting up with pure joy, thinking about anything else but Aden’s reading forgotten for the moment.

Lexa leaned back against the headboard of the bed slightly, listening to Aden’s words absentmindedly. The boy seemed to succeed well enough in diverting the other’s attention from grieve.

Lunch being brought in long moments later, silenced Aden again. “Just a few more moments” Boo urged Aden with big innocent eyes.

Lexa smiled slightly at young boy, it seemed that having reduced Titus’ influence over the younger nightblood children showed some effect. Luna’s son still expressed himself more freely than Kyla and Ryno did, who had both spent more time under Titus’ sole tutelage.

“It is time for lunch now, Boo” she admonished the small boy in a gentle tone, his dark eyes immediately snapped to her and he fell silent, when his shoulders dropped slightly, she added mollifyingly “If Aden is willing, I am sure he will continue his reading after lunch”.

Aden nodded in agreement “Let us eat then” he said, closing the book decisively for now.

~ ~ ~

“You can go back to Anya now” Lexa proclaimed to Marie, once they had left the rooms of the conclave. The dinner had passed peacefully and Lexa was a little calmed by the knowledge that the nightblood children were doing as well as expected considering the loss they had all just suffered.

Marie frowned slightly “Can’t I stay with you?” she asked, tone whiny. She did not know if Anya had returned yet from the commander’s quarters and she guessed that Ontari was still sleeping, she did not want to sit alone in the rooms, just waiting for someone to join her.

Lexa’s lips thinned slightly, she had no real intention to take the girl with her to meet the Skykru delegation which was supposed to arrive shortly. “There is no need for you to greet the Skykru delegation with me” she reasoned with the girl.

Marie’s eyes flashed with determination “But I want to” she retorted vehemently, giving the commander her best innocent eyes.

Lexa felt her resistance give away quickly and she inclined her head with a sigh “If you insist on it” she admonished the girl and huffed slightly, when the girl smiled immediately in success. She had been unable to identify what exactly had flashed through Marie’s grey eyes, but she guessed that it would be better to at least know where the girl was than leaving her on her own right now.

“How many of Skykru are coming?” Marie asked on their way to the base floor of the tower, honest curiosity burning in her grey eyes.

“Around twenty according to their ambassador” Lexa answered easily, although she did not know for sure why the girl seemed interest in this kind of information. Marie had not exhibited any kind of interest in the clan into which she had been born before. 

Marie nodded, wondering absentmindedly if Clarke would also be part of the army now. She barely paid the guards falling into step behind them any mind, being used to the constant presence of guards around the commander by now.

“You can still return inside” Lexa offered to the child in a low tone. Anya had told her that Marie still reacted skittishly when a crowd gathered and she knew that the arrival of Skykru would definitely grow a crowd. She knew that it would not be possible to shield the girl from everything which could potentially sent her into a panic, nor would it be sensible to try. But after having seen the girl having a breakdown just a few hours ago, she felt slightly overprotective of her now.

Marie frowned when she spotted definite worry in the woman’s green eyes. She knew that the war would be going to start soon and she would be expected to be at Lexa’s and Anya’s side then, so she shook her head, denying the commander’s offer. She did not wish to assume that Lexa thought that she was too weak to be outside in the crowd now, but it felt like that awfully much. She straightened herself and schooled her features, before they stepped out of the tower together.

 ~ ~ ~

Marie almost regretted her decision to insist on accompanying the commander, when she noticed just how crowded the streets were. It seemed almost as if every single citizen was on the streets right now, added to all the warriors which were still in the capitol as well, as not all of them had been sent to remove the threats of the bandits. When she really looked closer at the people gathering in the streets, she noticed quickly that it rather were almost only warriors from the different clans crowding the streets, obviously eager to catch a glimpse of Skykru.

Lexa watched the girl carefully from the corners of her eyes. It was obvious that the girl was much more affected by the crowd than she let on, but the little ticks Marie showed, gave her away easily. Her grey eyes looked around the crowd skittishly and Marie walked so close to Lexa, that the commander had to step carefully or she would have stumbled over the girl.

“When are they going to arrive?” Marie asked lowly over her shoulder, grey eyes only stopping their almost frantic movements for a moment to glance up at the commander.

“Within the hour” Lexa retorted easily and a slight smirk played around the corners of her mouth at the girl’s easily audible groan “I did not order you to come” she remarked, keeping her tone light even through the brief flash of irritation.

Marie winced slightly, but otherwise did not react to the woman’s words. She was well aware that as the commander’s second, she was technically expected to stand beside the leader whenever Lexa left the tower and she guessed that she would only be able through showing her loyalty and support to silence the voices doubting her allegiance. She remembered being there when they had last seen the Skykru delegation off as well and she had found the whole thing totally unnecessary back then, still wondering what had been the point of watching them climb into the rover and drive away. Marie guessed that welcoming another clan’s delegation made much more sense, showing hospitality and respect that way.

Marie frowned slightly when spotted Clarke standing beside Monty at the gates of the wall to the inner circle of Polis. She instinctively gravitated even closer to Lexa, but her brows creased when she noticed both women banding a look shortly. The look of deep hurt flashing through the commander’s eyes was easily notable and from the slight distance Clarke’s blue eyes looked red rimmed and puffy as if she had just stopped crying.

Despite all the eyes watching them at the moment, Marie stepped even closer to Lexa, grasping onto one of her hands and keeping a strong hold of it, she was surprised a little that the commander did not pry her hand away after a moment but seemed content to hold her hand instead. She smiled up slightly at the woman and was relieved when the sadness seemed to leave the brunette's green eyes. Internally Marie wondered what had prompted Lexa to decide not to forgive Clarke, it was painfully obvious that both women longed to be with each other. A small part of her was happy that Clarke would not return to the commander’s quarters, hoping that maybe Lexa would agree to have Anya, Ontari and her stay a little longer in her private rooms. She mutely contemplated Lexa again just what had happened between the both of them, but she was well aware that the commander would not be likely to give an answer to her right now, so she filed the question away in her mind for later. She leaned back slightly against Lexa and although she plainly saw the guards standing in a tight circle around them frown, Lexa did nothing to signal her that she had to move away either.

Lexa let an arm subtly snake around the girl’s shoulder, feeling the warmth her smaller body emitted slowly seep into her own consciousness. Seeing Clarke standing there with the very physical signs of just how much her decision must have hurt the blonde, felt like yet another punch right through her heart, but Lexa still kept her expression blank, focusing as much as possible on Marie instead. She knew that she should not display her affection for the child so clearly out in the open, but on the other hand it would be useless to try to hide their deep connection, too many people already knew that she felt for the child. She had already painted a large target on Marie’s back by allowing the girl to grow so close to her, but she could and would not undo so either now. Lexa was aware that she would need to be careful of just how much affection she displayed to the girl in settings like this, carefully judging that the other leaders would not get the impression that she might have gotten weak only to have her position questioned again, but she thought that showing their connection towards Skykru could not harm.

Lexa was still hesitant to fully trust the clan and she had only hesitantly accepted Monty's relayed offer that Raven wished to join the army as well, bringing potent explosives with her. She had only accepted with the knowledge that Nia would not hesitate in using every little advantage the queen thought to have at her hand, uncaring about just how many warriors would die needlessly in the war.

Lexa only took a little step back from the girl and ended their physical contact, when she noticed Titus' arrival together with the other ambassadors.

Marie frowned slightly at the loss of contact, but she straightened immediately once she noticed Titus glaring heatedly at her.

~ ~ ~

Clarke had returned to her old room after Anya had left her alone in the throne room. For a short moment, she had hoped that Lexa would return to her side and they could find a solution together, but when the brunette had not returned after a few moments, long after Anya’s steps had fallen silent, she had to admit defeat, tears blurred her gaze on the way. She had sunk down on the edge of the mattress, tears falling down her cheeks, clutching a pillow to her chest as desperate sobs wracked her frame.

She had always been able to spot the little variations of Lexa’s expression and she could not forget just how tortured the brunette had appeared when she proclaimed her choice. Outwardly the brunette had portrayed the façade of the commander to the point, jaw clenched and lips thinned slightly, expression otherwise stony and even cold, but what had given her away was the deep pain within her green eyes. Normally the woman would stare you down with her intense gaze, but Clarke had only seen sorrow and even regret flash through her eyes.

Not knowing, what else to do, Clarke had taken up the art supplies, which had remained in her room and began to fabricate a sketch of Lexa. She had already drawn the woman several times before, but now she drew the commander crying, like she had seen her cry when they assumed that Marie had been killed.

Absentmindedly, Clarke wondered if Lexa would be crying now as well, when tears fell down on the parchment, smudging some of the lines she had drawn already.

She was disturbed some time later by a knock at her door. For a fleeting moment Clarke hoped that Lexa was seeking her out, but when she opened the door, she was greeted by Monty.

The Asian boy frowned, when he looked at Clarke. “What the hell has happened to you?” he asked worriedly, taking in her tear strained face.

“Nothing” Clarke retorted immediately, shoving the drawing under a pillow “I will be right back” she proclaimed. She stepped into the bathroom quickly, washing away as much of the signs of her grieve as possible. She had nearly forgotten that the delegation of her people would be arriving in Polis shortly.

“Are you really fine?” Monty checked, once Clarke returned. He did not know what might have happened, but he had been surprised already to have been sent here to retrieve Clarke. Many people knew well enough that Clarke lived in the commander’s quarters now.

Clarke nodded and she tried to muster a decisive expression, but she knew well enough that her smile was wobbly at best.

“I was surprised that you are not in the commander’s…” Monty said lowly on their way to the elevator.

Clarke’s blue eyes flashed minutely with something he could not identify quickly enough, before the blonde shook her head.

“I have returned to this room” Clarke proclaimed, voice wavering only on the edges.

Monty’s brows scrunched together in confusion “The commander and you…?” he let his words trail off uncertainly.

Clarke shook her head, swallowing down the lump lodged in her throat.

Monty’s dark eyes flashed angrily for a moment, but before he could open his mouth, Clarke shook her head again, silencing him.

“Do not blame Lexa” Clarke said hotly “It is my fault…” her tone was deeply laced with regret and she wondered if she would be granted the chance at some point to try to earn back Lexa’s trust.

Monty frowned again, but he nodded in acceptance. He had come to know a little more of the woman, the commander actually was, but the leader was still an enigma to him mostly. “What happens now…” he paused for a moment, uncertain how to voice his question without sounding rude, so he continued again “…with Skykru?”

Clarke’s eyes narrowed at the boy “What are you implying now?”

“I do not know, what happened between you” Monty began to justify himself “Neither am I required to know any specifics. But you do not seem to have separated on good terms, how will this impact our people? Have you thought about that even once?”

Clarke’s lips thinned dangerously, she would not even consider for a single second that Lexa would be petty enough to take out their break up on all of Skykru. The brunette was too selfless and honourable to do so, she had even allowed her first love’s murderer into the coalition after all.

“How can you seriously ask that?!” Clarke retorted, voice rising with every word “You have heard her orders that even this upcoming war is only about finally taking out Nia and not erasing all of Ice Nation. So, you really think that she would even for a moment consider to take it out on Skykru?!”

Monty held up his hands in surrender “Alright, sorry” he offered, when he noticed the tears glittering in Clarke’s eyes.

The way out of the tower was silent and strained. Monty did not know what to say to the blonde girl. They had not spent much time with each other in the last months, as he had begun to spent more and more time with Kitara. The handmaid and he had grown much closer over time and they were thinking about taking the final step and bonding to each other as well soon.

The streets were much more crowded than Monty had expected and in Kitara’s presence, he was usually not standing out so starkly among the citizens of Polis any longer. He had begun to dress mostly in their clothes as well, picking up their language with time.

They came to a stop in front of the wall to the inner circle of Polis and Monty noticed Clarke hesitating for a single moment and when he followed her gaze, he spotted the commander and Marie in a slight distance.

He frowned when he noticed how longingly the blonde was looking at the commander now and he wondered just what might have driven them apart. For Clarke’s sake he hoped that it would only be a temporary separation.

~ ~ ~

Seeing Lexa in the distance and not being able to go over to her, felt like a slow torture to Clarke. She tried to force her eyes in the direction of the wall, but her graze gravitated back towards the young leader every few moments again.

Despite herself, Clarke felt a bittersweet smile flit over her features at the sight of Lexa snaking an arm around Marie’s shoulder, the child looking up at the brunette for a moment with a pure trusting smile expression. It was extremely rare of the commander to display affection like this openly and she hoped that it was no sign of the fact just how unsettled the young leader was by what transpired.

Her whole body was almost screaming at her, to move over towards Lexa, trying to ask for forgiveness, but the way with which the commander carried herself, austere and serene, unapproachable mask firmly in place, rooted Clarke to her spot. She frowned slightly, when she noticed Lexa moving a little away from Marie, when the ambassadors and the flamekeeper arrived and she felt a little flash of sadness at the sight of it. She had hoped that Lexa would one day truly realize that love did not have to be a weakness, but it seemed as if the commander still did not believe as such.

The faint sound of a roaring engine, finally made Clarke focus on the portal to the wall and she straightened herself. She did not know exactly just how would be arriving now, she had not cared to find out, the last days had been too hectic and chaotic for that.

The roaring quickly got louder and all around her, Clarke could see the grounders turn in anticipation as well, curiosity plain on their faces. She hoped that her people would do nothing to turn this almost friendly interest into suspicious hate again, there were enough grounders still hating Skykru as it was already.

Clarke was slightly surprised to see Bellamy exit one of the rovers at first. She had not seen the dark-haired young man after his trial of redemption and she had never expected that he would willingly join an army of the grounders, she hoped that he truly had had a change of mind in the past months. A few of the grounders around her seemed to remember Bellamy as well and even more surprisingly their reactions were not hostile at all. A frown flitted over her face again, Anya had criticised her on the fact that she still did not understand anything about their traditions, values and sense of honour and apparently the general was correct once again.

A slight smile settled over her features, when she spotted Raven climbing out of the passenger seat of one of the rovers. She had not gotten used yet to seeing Raven moving around without her brace again.

As the chancellor Markus Kane had also travelled to Polis and Clarke saw him approaching the commander with a friendly smile on his face. She tried to focus her attention on Raven instead, who was approaching her with fast strides, together with Bellamy. Both of them smiled at her in greeting and Clarke readily enveloped them.

“You’re not standing with the commander” Raven remarked, a weird mixture between a slight frown and a tease passed over her face.

Clarke shook her head in the negative, wanting to silence the mechanic for now and she hated herself to feel fresh tears burn in her eyes and a lump lodged into her throat again “Later” she croaked out.

Raven and Bellamy bandied a worried look, but sensed that prying further now, would not be good and focused on Monty instead.

“Woah, you sure as hell have gone full on grounder mode” Raven commented with a smirk tugging at her lips.

Monty laughed lightly “It is good to see you to, Raven”. He knew that he had changed his appearance much in the last months, he had even begun to learn some fighting techniques and built up a light sheen of muscles, together with the rougher grounder clothes, Monty was convinced that he did not appear as much of the gangly adolescent computer nerd anymore. 

They waited for a few minutes until Kane had officially been welcomed by the commander, before Clarke led them towards the tower, promising to show them her room.

 

Chapter 217

Marie waited patiently for Lexa to officially welcome Markus in the capitol and she subtly let her eyes drift over all of the members of Skykru who had climbed out of the rovers. She quickly counted that twenty-two others had arrived in the city with Markus and her brows scrunched together in confusion, when she spotted Bellamy among them, immediately heeding over to Clarke. She could still vividly remember how he had looked during his rite of redemption and she had assumed that he would never set foot into the capitol again. But she did not recognize most of the others, she knew that she had seen some of them in passing on the Ark, but these memories now seemed to belong to an entirely different life and had slowly become fuzzy around the edges.

From the corner of her eyes, Marie could see a slight sliver of irritation flash through Lexa’s green eyes who had obviously noticed the reunion between Bellamy and Clarke as well. She frowned slightly when she noticed how Lexa stiffened when the two hugged each other in the distance.

Markus did not seem to notice the shift in the commander’s mood and his pleasure to be welcomed back in the capitol seemed to truly be genuine. “… hopefully we will be invited to Polis under better circumstances in the future” Marie heard him address the commander, once she returned her attention to the man.

She had only lightly inclined her head in greeting to Markus, but had stayed firmly next to Lexa and internally hoped that the official talk would be finished soon. The wait had stretched far too long for her liking and Marie thought that she should have probably sought out Anya instead. She groaned internally, when one ambassador after the other stepped closer to speak to Markus as well and it seemed that Lexa was intent to stay until they had all finished. She did not listen to what was being said, not really interested in such talks at all. It was slowly getting darker and colder as well and Marie felt her patience thinning with every passing moment.

~ ~ ~

“Your endurance still needs improvement” Lexa commented in a light tone, once they had escorted the Skykru delegation to the base of the tower. Titus would take care of having them shown to their rooms in her stead. She had seen Marie beginning to fidget in front of her after some time, but it had been subtle enough that she had no seen a reason to reprimand the girl right there.

Marie sighed loudly “It was boring…” she complained, a slight pout had settled on her lips.

Although a smirk tugged at Lexa’s lips, her green eyes showed a hint of strictness “I had not ordered you to accompany me, it was your choice”.

“I know…” Marie retorted with a frown, as she turned puppy dog eyes towards the commander. She had not intended to anger or disappoint the woman at all. “…I had just wanted to show my continued loyalty to you…” she added, voice turning lower as her shoulders slumped.

Lexa’s eyes softened visibly, as she looked down at the child. She sighed under her breath “You do not have to prove your loyalty to me, Marie”.

Marie’s lips thinned slightly, she knew that Lexa was not questioning her loyalty, but others were.

“It will be enough that I know of your true allegiance” Lexa tried to reassure the girl. They had talked about this already, but it seemed that Marie still was not through with the matter. Lexa knew that no matter how often they would show themselves with Marie at her side, it would change the minds of those doubting the girl, only time would do so and Marie would need to be patient until those changes happened.

Marie frowned, but nodded with another sigh “As if I had wanted to be captured…” she grumbled under her breath, crossing her arms over her chest.

Lexa’s smirked deepened and she bit back a laugh at the girl’s antics, waiting in silence for the elevator to finally pull to a stop.

Her thoughts kept on returning to Clarke and seeing the blonde envelope Bellamy like that, had felt like a painful stab to her heart. Even during their preparation of the war against the Mountain, she had noticed that Clarke seemed closer to Bellamy than to the others of her people. Clarke had told her back then that they were just connected through their shared duties, but now she could not help herself but wonder if their separation would change that. The way with which Bellamy used to look at Clarke spoke of a deep devotion and Lexa bitterly imagined the two getting together. Clarke would surely have an easier and safer life at the man’s side, but Lexa felt her throat tightening at the images her imagination came up with flashed in front of her eyes and bitter tears burnt in them again.

Marie’s pouty attitude fell completely, when she noticed how Lexa’s mood changed in the blink of an eye. “Don’t be sad, Mommy” she addressed the woman with wide grey eyes, stepping closer to her in the small room of the elevator and hugging her midriff strongly.

Lexa swallowed forcefully past the lump lodged in her throat and her expression only briefly flashed with the sorrow contained within her mind “It is alright” she reassured the girl, voice quivering only on the edges. She squeezed the child’s shoulders briefly, before the elevator pulled to a stop and Marie backed out of their embrace again. Lexa felt her chest tighten, confronted with the empathy and clear worry shining in the girl’s grey eyes so plainly.

“Why do you not go and check in with Ontari?” Lexa suggested, once they had left the elevator. The nightblood girl would probably come over into her own quarters at a later point of the day, now that Anya and Marie would surely be staying with her as well.

Marie frowned for a moment, but she nodded in agreement. She had no idea how the Ice Nation nightblood was doing and she had heard in the morning that her injury seemed to have caught a light infection as well, Marie hoped that it would not progress like Nymo’s infection had. She already knew, that she would not heed Anya’s and Lexa’s words then, already having made the decision in her mind, that Ontari just was not allowed to die as well. She could not even bear the thought of losing the older girl as well.

She hesitated in front of the door to the quarters they shared with Anya for a moment, watching Lexa walk passed her with a slight frown. She thought that the woman’s posture did not look as proud and stoic as usual, shoulders hunched just the slightest bit, as if the weight of her station was physically bending the woman.

Marie entered the room as silent as possible, hoping that she would not wake Ontari up, in case the older girl was sleeping. She wondered if more had happened between Lexa and Clarke than the fight she had witnessed and she worried about Lexa, the woman had almost seemed regretful of her decision to break up with Clarke, so she could not understand now why Lexa had made the decision at all, if it was causing her such agony now.

Marie was so lost in thought, that she startled strongly when Ontari said “You can come in, you know?” almost a tease to her tone.

Marie looked over at the older girl with a sheepish expression and finally moved fully into the room, softly closing the door behind herself. “Do you still have a fever?” she asked immediately with worry flitting through her grey eyes, as she stepped up to Ontari’s bedside.

Ontari looked at the younger girl with a slight smile “I have been given something against it, so at least no in the moment” she answered the question easily.

“The lessons with Talia are no fun without you” Marie said after a beat of silence, sitting down on the edge of the mattress casually. She quickly turned around, pulling her feet up on the bed with her and sliding slightly closer to Ontari, so that she could really sit beside her.

Ontari snorted under her breath, amusement dancing through her dark eyes momentarily. She frowned when Marie leaned over a second later and a smaller arm snaked itself over her midriff. Her frown turned into worry, when the blonde girl seemed to begin crying only a moment later, before Ontari had made up her mind on what to ask or tell the girl.

“Hey, Marie, what is wrong?” Ontari asked intently, looking down at the girl in worry, letting one hand run over the younger girl’s back reassuringly.

Marie scooted off slightly, sitting up and rubbing at her cheeks “It is Lexa…” she sobbed out. She could not forget the image of the commander crying in obvious agony and how sad the woman obviously was. She would have preferred for the commander to have a physical wound instead, she could easily heal that for her, but she felt helpless now.

Ontari’s frown deepened and she internally wondered if there had been another assassination attempt made on the commander. She guessed that it would not be too unreasonable for Nia to try to take out the Trikru leader and by thus prevent the whole before it really started. But she had not heard any commotion since leaving the commander’s quarters in the morning and Anya had not mentioned anything when she had checked in with her later as well and Ontari was convinced that the general would have informed her about such happenings. She was fairly certain that the Trikru woman would have had her summoned or put under heavier guard as well, the general had proven after all that she seemed to genuinely cared for her safety and survival as well.

“I would have probably heard if there had been attack” Ontari said to Marie in a slightly hesitant tone. The only reason why she might now have been told, would have been if somehow, she was suspected to have had a hand in the possible assassination attempt, but she had not left this room, neither had she had any contact with anyone from Azgeda since bringing Marie back into the capitol.

Marie looked at Ontari with her brows creased in confusion for a moment, before she quickly shook her head, rubbing at her cheeks again “There was no attack” she denied vehemently, although a shadow of fear at the mere idea flashed over her features. Marie wondered with a start if she should better immediately get to the commander’s quarters, just in case that something happened to Lexa.

“What is it then?” Ontari pried in a soft tone, it was evident that Marie was lost in her own thoughts and the girl had at least stopped crying, but something must have happened or the blonde girl would not be like this at all now. She had heard a slight confrontation between Wanheda and the general in the hall before, but she had been unable to hear what exactly had been said.

Marie sniffled slightly, when she explained to Ontari how she had woken up only to find Lexa crying wholeheartedly in the bathroom.

Ontari frowned as she listened to the younger girl’s words. She had no idea what might have caused the commander to lose her façade like that but her mind somehow remained stuck on the question why Marie had been asleep at all at that time of the day, the younger girl did not appear to be sick, neither could she detect any visible wounds with a quick sweep of the girl. “What had happened to you before then?” she asked worriedly, inspecting the younger girl a little closer.

A sheepish expression flashed over Marie’s features and she visibly hesitated to answer. She had previously not thought about the fact that the Ice Nation nightblood could not have known that she had broken down before. She nervously twisted the hem of her shirt between her fingers, wondering frantically just how she could explain to Ontari why she had broken down in the first place without giving away her talent. Lexa had been insistent that Ontari should also not learn of it for as long as possible.

“Well…” Marie fumbled for words, feeling Ontari’s insistent gaze resting on her lowered head.

“You have not hurt yourself again, have you?” Ontari asked after a moment, tone layered slightly with worry and a hint of strictness. The nightblood truly hoped that she was guessing wrong there.

Marie looked up again and shook her head decisively in denial, she doubted that the places where she had scratched herself unconsciously would count as hurting herself on purpose. “I broke down again … sort of…” she confessed after another beat of silence.

Ontari nodded with a sigh and compassion overtook her features, as she snaked her arm back around the younger girl and pulling her back into a hug “You are feeling better now, right?” she checked worriedly.

Marie nodded, but a frown took over her features “But, what about Lexa?” she asked with rising agitation again.

Ontari sighed again under her breath. She did not know at all on what to advice the younger girl on, she neither knew what might have happened to tick the Trikru woman off in the first place, nor did she know her that much any way. It was obvious that the situation was upsetting Marie which she found worrying if the girl had just had another break down a few hours ago, but Ontari was convinced that the commander’s personal feelings were absolutely nothing she should be thinking about at all. It would probably be better if she stayed within their own quarters then as well for the night.

“I honestly do not know, Marie” Ontari finally settled on “Why don’t you go and see how the commander is doing?” she added, sensing that Marie probably wished to be in Lexa’s company now. The younger girl was extremely empathic, so it was no wonder that Marie was worrying now.

Marie looked unsatisfied at the answer, but she shrugged her shoulders “Won’t you come?” she asked after a beat of silence.

Ontari shook her head in the negative “It is certainly better if I remain here for the night” she assessed in a cautious tone. She would surely hear later if the general agreed or not.

Marie frowned, tilting her head to the side slightly as she gazed up at Ontari and her tone was laced with accusation as she retorted “But you belong with us now”.

Ontari blinked down at the younger girl in slight surprise. Marie’s grey eyes burnt the conviction of her statement and she was caught off guard at the physical proof of just how much the younger girl clearly cared for her as well. Rendered speechless for a moment, she tightened her arm around Marie’s frame in a mute gesture, swallowing past the lump suddenly lodged in her throat.

She was saved from having to think of a fitting reply, by a throat being cleared rather loudly suddenly. Ontari looked up quickly and felt a blush heating her cheeks unbidden, when she spotted the general casually leaning against the doorframe. From her whole posture and the softness of her brown eyes, Ontari guessed that the Trikru woman must have been standing there for some time already. A flash of irritation rushed through her mind at the woman obviously listening to their conversation like that, but she had also not noticed her arrival, so she had her own moment of distraction to thank for that.

Marie looked sheepishly over at Anya, the assurance burning on her tongue that she had in fact not told Ontari anything about her talent and she only stopped herself from uttering the words, when she realized that she would tip off Ontari to the case that she was keeping a secret from her at all.

Anya had observed the girl’s for long moments in silence, neither of them had noticed her arrival at all. She thought it to be good that Marie was still confiding into Ontari, but she had worried that the child would forget about keeping her talent hidden and had been positively surprised that Marie had not uttered a word about it. Thankfully Ontari had not tried to pry for the reason of Marie’s break down as well. She was fairly certain that Lexa would not be against Ontari staying the night in her quarters again and Anya did not want the nightblood girl to feel separated.

The way how Lexa’s apparent grief at ending the relationship with Clarke was obviously affecting Marie was worrying. Anya feared what would happen when Marie really understood that her own wellbeing had played a major factor in Lexa’s decision. Anya could only assume how Marie would come to the conclusion that she was the sole cause of Lexa’s misery with the way she had now reacted to her friend’s death.

“You can both come over now” Anya proclaimed evenly, it could only take a few more minutes until dinner would be served and they could share that with the commander as well. She smiled softly when Marie immediately leapt from the bed and clutched onto one of her hands, she was still trying to figure out a pattern in the bouts of the girl’s overly clinginess and had failed so far.

“I did not say anything…” Marie whispered up at Anya, while Ontari was still getting out of bed, the rustling of the furs easily concealed her low words.

Anya smiled at the child good-naturedly, amusement dancing through her brown eyes “I am aware” she commented lowly. Her eyes had flitted over shortly to Ontari, but the older girl showed no reaction that she had heard anything at all. Anya knew that it would be foolish to assume that they would be able to hide Marie’s healing from the nightblood girl forever, they were living to closely with her now for that, but she still agreed with Lexa that hiding it for as long as possible was for the best. Although Anya had the premonition that Marie would likely be able to heal Ontari if she tried to do so as well.

Marie kept on holding to Anya’s hand on the way through the hall, unwilling to let go for the moment. She did not know exactly why, but she was fearful of how Lexa was doing right now.

To her great surprise, Lexa was sitting at one of her tables, reading through what appeared to be a variety of reports. The commander’s expression appeared calm and collected, when she looked up and her expression softened when she noticed Marie almost clinging to Anya.

Marie let go of Anya immediately and almost skipped over to the commander, peering over her shoulder in interest “What is that?” she asked chirpily. She frowned slightly when she was unable to decipher the writing at all “I can’t even read that…” she exclaimed, head tiled to the side.

Lexa’s lips tilted up into a smile “It is rather hard to decipher, yes, the Rock Line Clan ambassador has an appalling handwriting”.

Marie giggled slightly in reaction, before her expression sobered a little, she leaned over slightly to climb onto the woman’s lap “I am glad you are better now, Mommy” she whispered into her ear with a tentative smile on her features.

Lexa nodded with a slightly forced smile, putting a single blonde lock behind the child’s ear. She had forced her mind to remain focused on her duty at hand, all too aware that wallowing in her sorrow would not lead to anything, she needed to focus on this war now and there was still so much which needed her attention before they would leave the capitol. She felt some of the weight from her shoulders lift, when Marie positioned herself comfortably in her lap, head lying on her own chest and she leaned down, placing a gentle kiss on the girl’s forehead, as she closed her eyes and only focused on the child in her arms for long moments of peace.

 

 

Chapter 218

The next four days passed much too quick to Marie’s liking and with every further elapsed hour she just knew too keenly that they would soon leave the capitol and begin their march into the north.

Fortunately, and to her immense relieve, the healers had been able to fight off the infection which began to settle into Ontari’s wound and the nightblood girl was just waiting to get her stitches removed now.

“You seem tense” Ontari remarked from her place on the couch. The commander and the general had just left for the final meeting with the ambassadors and a pair of handmaidens bustled around the room, packing up some things for the commander already.

Marie had been presented with the choice to either accompany the two women to the meeting or remain with Ontari in their quarters. She had already woken up in a bad mood and had vehemently proclaimed her decision to remain in the commander’s quarters. She knew that they would be leaving tomorrow at around this time and she was already feeling sick.

Marie lightly glared at Ontari and her fingers had obviously tightened in Risha’s fur, as the wolf let out a low whine. She uncurled her fingers from Risha’s fur and petted apologetically over the wolf’s snout “Sorry girl” she said and stood up, going over quickly to Ontari and letting herself fall heavily on the couch next to the older girl. “We’ll leave tomorrow” Marie huffed out, arms crossed over her chest and she glared into the flames dancing in the fire place.

Ontari frowned slightly, all of them had been aware of the approaching war and she was internally only looking forward to see Nia fall once and for all. She could not really fathom why Marie appeared so bleak about the prospect of the war, but she could not find a reason for the younger girl’s dark mood any other way. The last days had passed in an almost too peaceful manner and all four of them had spent the hours of the evening together in the commander’s quarters, Marie mostly curled up with one of the Trikru women in one way or another. “I am aware” she retorted into the silence after long moments and her dark eyes rested on Marie’s face, watching the younger girl intently.

Marie huffed under her breath at the nonchalant reaction.

“I doubt that the commander or general would consent to you staying in the capitol” Ontari chose her words carefully after another moment.

Marie’s grey eyes snapped over to the nightblood girl immediately and they were burning with an almost accusation “I do not wanna stay behind” she said forcefully, tone rising with every word.

Ontari’s brows scrunched together slightly “What is your problem then?” she asked, keeping her tone as light and kind as possible, although she found it hard to understand with Marie’s mannerism at the current moment.

Marie’s attitude fell slightly and open fear was displayed on her features, as she pulled her knees to her chest, hugging them with her own arms. “What if we don’t come back?” she asked, voice quivering notably.

Ontari frowned for a moment, wondering internally what Marie asking after at all. Where else would they go after the war, if not back to the capitol?

“What if you die...or Anya…or Lexa?” Marie said, grey eyes shining suspiciously wet already at the mere thought of something happening to either of them.

Ontari sighed under her breath, she knew that she could not sensibly promise to the younger girl that she or the two Trikru women would not get hurt, they would be leaving to fight a war after all and not simply make a journey to visit another clan. But she knew that they would travel with a huge army, no matter how many people of Azgeda Nia would force to fight for her, the commander and the coalition’s army would outnumber them greatly. But she had heard Marie address the same subject already with the general and the woman had told the girl that they had planned the war as best as possible and that there was nothing more that they could possibly do.

“All of us are experienced fighters” Ontari finally settled on, but the younger girl did not appear reassured at all.

Marie’s lips were pulled into a slight grimace. The nearer the war was creeping, the harder it was for her to block out the memories of her time with the queen and knowing that the queen’s fortress was exactly their destination was internally freaking her out. Lexa and Anya had convinced her of the fact that she herself had been kept alive and tortured at the queen’s hands, simply with the intent of hurting the commander. But if the queen hated Lexa with such a passion, Marie could not understand how Lexa still expected to come out of this war alive. She also wondered just what they would be encountering on their way to the queen’s fortress. She could not clearly remember for how long Ontari and she had travelled to reach Polis, but she had heard Anya and Lexa discuss that they were expected to take at least around two to three weeks, depending on the severity of the weather, to reach the queen’s fortress. The blockade around Ice Nation had been in place for some time now and Lexa was sure that they would be met with half-starved villages on end.

“I just don’t think that the queen will just give up like that…” she mumbled moodily. Lexa and Anya had tried to reassure her, that she was worrying for nothing, but she did not believe them.

Internally Ontari had to agree with Marie on that point, but there was nothing they could do than be careful when truly nearing Nia’s fortress and she was positive that the commander would not be facing Nia on her own, although that would probably be exactly what Nia hoped to achieve. She would personally make sure, that Marie would not have to face Nia on her own alone ever again.

She tried to tell Marie exactly that, hoping to ease some of the younger girl’s agitation while she put an arm around the girl’s shoulder.

Marie leaned against the older girl, trying to force the fear from her mind. She knew that there was nothing in her power, which she could do to stop the war from happening now. She inspected her hands critically, taking in her scraped knuckles from yesterday’s training. Anya and Lexa had finally allowed her to get back into training on the previous day, while Ontari had still been restrained to their quarters.

She backed off from Ontari, when Laurel entered the room and motioned the nightblood girl into the bathroom. Marie remained sitting on the couch, staring into the flames forlornly. She knew that the journey into the north would probably be highly lacking in the comforts she had grown accustomed to in the past. The only real consolation was that Lexa had reassured her already that she would be sharing her tent with her, but she was not sure yet if that also included Anya and Ontari or not, although she really hoped so.

It seemed to take only a few moments, before Ontari returned to her side again, moving her shoulder around gingerly, with a clearly pleased expression. “Does it still hurt?” Marie asked, wondering how the older girl would fare in the next days. She knew that the journey was expected to turn exhaustion to all of them.

“Nothing than a mere ache” Ontari reassured the blonde quickly. She would have probably been fine, if the stitches had been removed yesterday or the day before as well, but Anya had insisted, after speaking with Laurel herself, that they should remain as long as possible, to minimize the slight risk of the wound reopening at the first harder strain. “Do you want to join the meeting now?” she asked, brushing off Marie’s worrying gaze easily.

Marie’s face pulled into a slight grimace, she had accompanied Lexa to several meeting through the last days and in her opinion, they had turned increasingly boring and she did not understand how a group of adults could keep on arguing about such little annoying details, worse than how the other delinquents had squabbled among themselves after their landing.

“What do you want to do then?” Ontari asked, amusement colouring her tone, as she sat down on the couch next to the younger girl.

Marie looked around the room for a moment, searching for something and a smile flitted over her features, when she spotted the book, that the nightblood girl had read to her many weeks ago already. She quickly stood from the couch, walking over and retrieving it from the table, before she returned to Ontari, a hopeful expression on her face, as she leaned over and offered the book to her.

Ontari frowned at the book, she had not really enjoyed reading to her in the first place and she was not looking forward to a repetition as well.

“Oh, please” Marie said, eyes turning pleading and her lower lip protruded a little in a pout “You have asked, what I want to do instead…” she reasoned, gaze turning even more pleading.

Ontari rolled her eyes at the younger girl, but took the book from her, opening it on the marked page. She rolled her eyes even more dramatically at Marie’s antics, when the child cuddled up to her immediately with a clearly pleased smile on her features.

~ ~ ~

Ontari continued reading to the younger girl patiently. She had to threaten Marie to stop reading at a few points, when she was finally granting on her nerves with her critics about words that she did not pronounce correctly. She thought that they should just read a book written in Trigedasleng instead, she would not be facing this problem there.

“Don’t fall asleep” she chided the younger girl with a raised brow, shaking Marie slightly.

Marie blinked up at Ontari, expression sheepish “Won’t, promise” she assured her quickly, she had not even noticed how her eyes had gotten heavier all of a sudden. She did not know exactly why, but in the last day, she had been increasingly tired, although she had not done much physical exercises at all. Lexa had also asked her again, if she remembered something specific directly from before falling asleep, but she did not understand after what the woman was asking at all. She hoped that she was falling sick with something or the march was going to be even less enjoyable than she already anticipated now.

Ontari frowned slightly, but nodded. Anya had asked her in private just before leaving Marie with her, to specifically keep an eye on the younger girl’s behaviour. She had found the request odd, but she guessed that something must be worrying the general to have her ask at all.

Marie rubbed at her temples absentmindedly and her brows creased when she took full notice of the fact that Ontari had not resumed reading “What? Why don’t you continue?” she asked, a hint of defensiveness underlined her tone.

Ontari rolled her eyes “As you wish, your majesty” she good-naturedly teased the blonde girl.

Marie seemed immune to the slight jab and only smiled slightly, before settling back down comfortably.

 ~ ~ ~

Anya had sat through the entire meeting with a slight scowl in place. It was ridiculous just how often the ambassadors kept on questioning the commander and she had to admit that she was not envying Titus in the slightest, the ambassadors would clearly be even harder to handle once the commander left and there was no certainty of her return in good health. She would have assumed that the other leaders would be looking forward to subduing Azgeda, which could finally lead to lasting peace. But it rather seemed as if most of them were disappointed by the fact that this could prove to be the last war for a hopefully long time and the fact that Lexa had clearly given orders to only kill those of Ice Nation who actively fought against them, was clearly another source of unease.

Anya knew well enough that Lexa was not just envisioning a world without war, but also a world where they could offer mercy instead of death for almost every transgression. She could already fathom how hard the resistance from the ambassadors would be to that and she was not convinced that even Titus would agree easily with Lexa.

She rolled her shoulders slightly, easing out the tension of having sat stiff and upright for several hours. Although they would begin their march in the early hours of the next morning, Anya longed to get back onto the training pits at least for a little time, before returning to the commander’s quarters. She knew that Lexa had not had the opportunity to set foot on the training pit for several days as well, as the number of meetings had only increased and the woman had chosen to spend every little moment in the privacy of her quarters with their second instead of outside.

“Up for a little sparing match?” Anya addressed the commander, once Titus had filed out of the throne room and they were alone again, beside Ryder and Gustus flanking the throne.

Lexa raised a brow at her former mentor in silent inquiry. She would not have considered going to the training pits now, but the idea had some appeal, she could already feel the energy thumbing through her veins. “You wish to train Marie and Ontari as well?” she retorted thoughtfully. It had not seemed as if Marie was looking forward to leave Polis on the next day and the girl’s mood had slowly plummeted through the last days. The child had only really seemed content within her quarters and Anya had been less than impressed with the girl’s efforts during their first training session. Lexa doubted that forcing the girl to train now would lead to anything though.

Anya pursed her lips slightly, before she shook her head in denial. Her older charge should have her stitches removed by now, but Ontari was well trained enough not to truly need one more training session and their march would be long and probably would offer more than enough opportunity to squish in a little practise for the girls here and there. Both of them were worried about Marie now, the girl seemed to have continue to subconsciously use her talent to heal the little bruises and scratches Anya had acquired during training the last days. But Marie did not seem to remember doing so at all and how should they forbid Marie to use her power on them, if she was not actively doing so to her own knowledge. She also thought that the blonde girl seemed to get tired at weird intervals through the day at the moment and seemed to get paler. Anya tried to chalk it off internally to the fact how unsettled Marie was about the prospect of leaving the capitol the next day, but something still felt off.

The atmosphere on the streets was reflecting Anya’s own mood and she was glad to set foot back on the training pits, facing off with her former second. Hearing the sound of steel clanging together loudly and feeling the thrill of such a collision running through her arms, relaxed something in her, she had always felt best in the throes of battle and the knowledge of their revenge on Nia finally coming into reach, let the blood boil hotly in her veins.

When Anya looked at Lexa, she thought to see some of her internal musings being reflected in the green orbs of the commander.

Her expression set into grim lines, when she spotted Clarke standing at the edge of the crowd, closely together with Raven and Bellamy.  She knew that Lexa had not spoken a single word with the blonde Skykru woman since proclaiming their separation and although Lexa had not said anything about Clarke as well, Anya was only too aware of just how deeply the younger woman was torn by this break up. She noted immediately when Lexa spotted Clarke as well, a single crack in the commander’s stoic mask flitted over the brunette’s features, green eyes misting over for the blink of a second and Anya steeled herself, using the little distraction to her own advantage and bringing her own sword down relentlessly on the younger woman.

Lexa hissed sharply, when Anya disarmed her and she chided herself a fool within her mind all over, when the older woman overpowered her because of that, bringing her to her knees and she keenly felt the cold steel of Anya’s sword pressing against the delicate skin of throat. Her green eyes flashed with internal annoyance and she tried to burry her simmering feelings and longings for Clarke further into the far end of her mind. If something like this repeated itself on the battle field, she would forfeit her own life.

“You cannot be distracted now” Anya hissed at the younger woman, lowering her sword, brown eyes narrowed sharply and lips pressed into a harsh line. Lexa’s guard had been effortless before the brunette had spotted Clarke watching her and she feared that the blonde woman could still proof to be Lexa’s downfall, if the commander allowed so.

“As if I don’t know that" Lexa shot back, lips pulled into a slight snarl. She did not like at all just how easily Anya had been able to use a single moment of brief distraction now. She could just vividly picture how Nia would try to distract her as well and she would not get away with bruised and scraped knuckles then. A few of the warriors around the training pits seemed rather bewildered as well and Lexa set her features into a stoic mask, before she drove Anya back with a harsh series of attacks on her part. It did not bring her the awaited relief to make Anya stumble and disarm her in return, but at least the other warriors seemed a little more at ease, turning back to their own training when she stored away her sword.

~ ~ ~

“Why did it seem as if the mighty commander was just now distracted into losing their match just by the sight of you?” Raven turned her head to Clarke. She frowned when she noted how worried the blonde appeared now. “Hey, she broke your heart, remember?” she said under her breath. Raven had been totally unprepared to watch Clarke break in her quarters like she had on the day of their arrival in the capitol. Clarke had refused to elaborate on the reason for their breakup, so Raven had logically put the whole blame on the commander.

Clarke’s blue eyes narrowed dangerously at her friend and she quickly looked around, hoping that no one was paying them any mind. She had cautioned both of them sharply against saying something about Lexa’s and her relationship, past relationship she bitterly corrected herself internally, but it seemed her warning had fallen on deaf ears. She did not know how she should explain to either of them that she had been the one to break Lexa’s heart by one single stupid fight, that she had broken hear own in the process was probably just fate’s payback for hurting someone as pure as Lexa.

“You deserve someone better" Bellamy tried to placate her in an understanding tone, eyes shining.

Clarke’s eyes narrowed further. She did not know what had gotten into Bellamy, but Raven had told her that he had broken up with his girlfriend a few weeks ago. “Like you, or what?” she retorted sarcastically and she barely felt anything at the clear hurt flashing through his eyes. Her blue eyes returned to Lexa and she longed to go over to the brunette and take care of the few wounds which were visible beneath her clothing. She knew that she would not be welcomed to though now, so she stayed in place. She did not know exactly how she should try to win the other woman back, but she would try, once this war was over. If anything, watching this training had at least shown her something, she needed to not be selfish now and respect Lexa’s wish for distance, she would never forgive herself if she was the reason for the brunette’s death. Her blue eyes were hard with the conviction of her feelings as she finally added “There is no one better than her".

 

 

 

 

Chapter 219

Marie frowned when lunch was served and Lexa and Anya still had not returned to the commander’s quarters. Lexa had promised her in the morning that her final meeting was not expected to take very long and that they would spend the rest of the day together.

“Their meeting is probably just running late” Ontari tried to sooth the younger girl, sensing her growing unrest at the continued absence of the two Trikru women. She tried to not take the fact that Marie obviously preferred their company over her own too personal at the moment, although she had truly given her best to distract the younger girl for as long as possible. She doubted that anything worrying had happened in the meantime or they would surely have been told already.

Marie pouted visibly, sitting down on one of the chairs at the table with a sigh “But Lexa promised that she would be here for most of the day” she retorted with a little grumble.

Ontari rolled her eyes at the blonde girl “I am sure, they’ll return any moment now” and internally she was really hoping that the two women would, otherwise she could already imagine how whiny Marie would continue to be until Lexa and Anya returned.

Marie narrowed her eyes at the nightblood girl, shoving her food from one part of the plate to the other, without eating anything really. She was feeling queasy again and her stomach felt tightly coiled with anticipation.

Ontari watched the younger girl’s antics with a deepened frown, Marie had not touched the tea yet, which was supposed to settle her stomach and she nudged it into the other girl’s direction with a pointed look. Anya normally had to remind Marie to drink it as well during meals, to the obvious annoyance of the general.

“Do you think Clarke will come as well?” Marie asked, after long moments of silence. She had completely ignored Ontari’s pointed cue, shoving the plate away from herself instead.

Ontari’s eyes narrowed slightly. “How am I supposed to know?” she retorted with a frown, she had not contemplated on that question either and was puzzled that Marie would think about the matter at all. “You need to eat something” she added after a beat of silence with another pointed look.

Marie rolled her eyes, picking up the mug with tea finally. She knew that Anya would only criticise her later, if she did not eat now. 

~ ~ ~

In Marie’s opinion, it took immensely long until the doors to the commander’s quarters were finally opened again and her face immediately brightened with a smile, when she spotted Lexa and Anya entering the rooms together.

Her smile fell a little, when she noticed that both of the women were sweaty, dishevelled and Lexa’s skin showed some dried black blood as well. Clearly there had to have been a fight of some sorts and Marie feared just what might have happened, the memory of the assassin’s arrows piercing through Lexa’s body and the black blood gushing from her abdomen, flashed through her mind vividly.

“Just a few scratches” Lexa reassured the blonde girl immediately, seeing the worry, bordering on fear flashing through those grey big eyes.

Anya snorted under her breath, but kept the scathing comment lingering on the tip of her tongue unspoken. She gazed down at Marie with a slight smile, placing one hand on her shoulder for a moment and giving a light squeeze in mute greeting. “Have the stitches been taken out?” she addressed Ontari, brown eyes flicking over to the Ice Nation nightblood girl.

Ontari nodded her head in agreement “No sign of infections” she relayed the healer’s assessment without being asked to, she knew the general would wish to know any way.

Handmaiden carrying pails filled to the brim with hot water, began filling into the room only a short moment later, quickly preparing a bath for their commander.

Lexa and Anya both shrugged out of their receptive armour, handing the pieces of to the leaving handmaidens to be checked for last repairs and to cleaned for them as well.

Anya asked Ontari to accompany her back to their own quarters for a moment, intent on checking that everything important had been packed. She discarded the idea of asking Marie to come as well, when the blonde child already seemed to gravitate towards Lexa, clearly wanting to stay with the commander now.

Marie lingered in the opened door to the bathroom for long moments, watching Lexa discard the rest of her clothing and finally stepping into the bathing tube.

Lexa sensed the girl watching her behind herself, but waited for a moment if Marie would enter on her own. She had not forbidden the girl to be within the bathroom while she bathed so far.

“You are bleeding” Marie finally uttered. Her grey eyes were hefted on one of Lexa’s arms, a small trickle of black blood ran down the limb, but the commander did not seem to mind.

Lexa nodded slightly “You can come in fully, but close the door behind yourself”. She doubted that Anya would remain within her quarters with Ontari for long, allowing Marie to see her disrobed was one thing, but allowing Ontari the same was another. The Ice Nation nightblood had already been privy to a much more private side of her than any other nightblood had been with a commander before.

Marie quickly shut the door behind herself, stepping closer to the bathing tube with sure strides and she immediately grasped onto Lexa’s obviously injured arm, not even needing a single second to have her talent at the tips of her fingers and the graze knitted itself back together in the blink of an eye.

Lexa’s face showed alarm at the girl healing her so nonchalantly and seemingly without any effort as well. Anya and she had both told Marie numerous times that they did not wish for the girl to use her talent so much, they both still feared that the healing talent would come at a still unknown cost for the child.

“Can I bath with you?” Marie asked, grey eyes hopeful, completely ignoring Lexa’s expression of displeasure.

Lexa sighed lightly under her breath, but nodded her head in agreement. They had bathed together before after all. But they had done so the last time, before Marie had been in Nia's clutches and Lexa did not know if allowing the child to bath with her was really such a good idea. She remembered that Abby had told them to treat Marie as normally as possible, not to give the girl the impression that something had changed because of what had been done to her. She guessed that it would be alright, because Marie was the one to specifically be this close to her now, even when they were both naked.

She watched the child disrobe in silence, but she frowned slightly, when her eyes trailed over the girl’s naked form. Marie seemed to have lost quiet a lot of all the muscle mass which Nia had forced the girl to develop, but it did not appear as if she had regained any weight otherwise and the child now really just looked too thin, almost famished. She thought that Marie had been eating well enough in the past weeks to regain some weight and was puzzled why the girl still seemed so thin. “Have you been feeling ill lately?” Lexa asked, once Marie joined her in the bathing tube. With gentle hands, she guided the girl to lean back against herself, until she felt her body relax a few moments later.

Marie shook her head quickly in the negative. The tea that Anya was still forcing her to drink before every meal helped in settling her queasy stomach, although it now mostly felt always queasy. She relaxed further, when she felt Lexa’s hands gently caress over her arms and shoulders.

“You know that we do not wish for you to use your talent on insignificant wounds like this” Lexa said after a beat of silence. The previous slight fatigue which had began to settle in her mind, had been wiped away by Marie’s healing as well and Lexa felt refreshed and filled with fresh energy once again.

Marie winced slightly at the commander’s words, knowing all too well that she should not use her powers like that. Defiance flashed through her grey eyes nevertheless and she repeated her reasoning “You were bleeding”.

Lexa sighed under her breath “I was” she agreed “But it was nothing more than a slight graze, Marie, it would not have required any attention at all”.

Marie twisted slightly in front of the commander, looking up at the woman with narrowed eyes, a hint of anger blazing within her gaze “You were bleeding and hurt” her voice rose slightly with defiance.

Lexa supressed the urge to roll her eyes at the girl’s suddenly stubborn antics. Hoping to sooth the obviously getting agitated girl, she gently brushed a stray lock of blonde hair from her forehead behind on her ears and let her hand linger a moment on the girl’s cheek. “I was not hurt” she corrected in a soft tone “The graze barely stung at all, Marie”.

Something flashed through Marie’s grey eyes, too quick for Lexa to identify and she only watched a storm of emotions rage through her eyes in silence for a few moments, waiting for the child to state her mind. It was obvious that something else must be upsetting Marie at the moment.

Marie’s lower lip already trembled as she said “I can’t make your sadness go away, but I can heal a graze…” her voice shook noticeably and her shoulder sagged visibly.

Lexa felt her heart beat painfully within her chest at the clear desperate wish for Marie to make her feel better and the way not being able to, obviously seemed to affect the child. She sighed again deeply, as she gently forced Marie’s chin back upwards, so that their eyes could reconnect.

“Marie, you are not required to try to lift my mood" she tried to reason with the child in a gentle tone “It is alright to feel sad sometimes" she added after a beat of silence, green eyes showing some of her feelings.

Marie scowled slightly, crossing her arms over chest petulantly. She knew that Lexa was suffering, but that she could not help her with this kind of suffering.

Lexa lightly pulled the girl to lean back against herself, waiting until the child relaxed again. She could not offer the girl to be happy again just like that, but separating from Clarke would not hurt as sharply as it did now with time.

“Don’t want you to be sad, Mommy" Marie mumbled, voice still laced with a mixture of defiance and desperation.

Lexa hummed lightly under her breath “I appreciate that, Marie" she acknowledged the sentiment in a soft tone. 

Marie leaned back fully, her head resting on Lexa’s chest, hearing the woman’s heart beat strongly and steadily within her chest. “Love you" she mumbled, sleepiness suddenly overtaking her senses.

Lexa tightened her arms around the girl slightly “Love you too" she whispered into her ears. She smiled down slightly at the child, amusement pulling at her features, it was obvious that Marie was close to falling asleep already. She knew that the girl had slept rather restless during the last night, so she thought nothing of it for now. Instead, she declined back against the edge of the bathing tube, pulling the girl with her and leaning her head back, closing her eyes as well for long moments.

~ ~ ~

Anya frowned when she returned to the commander’s quarters with Ontari in tow and could spot neither Lexa nor Marie.

Ontari wordlessly moved over to the couch and sat down, already expecting that they would spend the rest of the day here.

Anya walked over to the bathroom, opening the door without a sound and entering without announcing her presence. The sight, which met her eyes, made her pause in her step, as a look of utter fondness settled on her features.

Marie appeared to be sleeping within Lexa’s arms, head resting comfortably on the commander’s chest, while Lexa’s eyes were closed as well. Her former second’s features looked relaxed and blank, but Anya sensed that she was not indeed sleeping, but rather mediating. Both seemed utterly content in their positions and the whole scene looked domestic and soft.

Anya dearly hoped that they would return victorious from the North without suffering too many losses. Both, Lexa and Marie, deserved to experience more moments like this one.

Lexa’s eyes opened abruptly, when she sensed someone watching her and her gaze fell on Anya leaning against the wall with a knowing smirk on her lips and looking at them with gentle brown eyes.

They both knew that this peaceful time was going to come to an end at first light and they would once again be marching into another war.

Anya’s brown eyes narrowed and her features were masked with worry, when she noticed that blood began to trickle from Marie’s nose. She could not remember if the girl had taken a hit to the face during their training session, but she was fairly certain that she had not hurt her. “Her nose is bleeding” she said to Lexa, crouching down in front of the bathing tube.

Lexa’s brows furrowed and she gently pushed the girl into a sitting position, keeping her upright and tilting her chin upwards. There truly was a slight trickle of blood coming from the girl’s nose. “Has she taken a hit during training?” she asked Anya, giving Marie’s shoulders a slight shake to wake the girl back up again.

Anya shook her head slightly “Not that I can remember”, but she could not say so with utter faith. She could also not think of any other reason for the girl to suddenly have a bleeding nose either.

Marie’s grey eyes flashed with alarm and she noticed both Lexa and Anya staring at her intently, worry marring their features. “Did something happen?” she asked, voice slightly nervous and eyes flicking between the two women. Her expression turned a little sheepish, when she realized that she must have fallen asleep during the bath, she tried to apologize, but Lexa brushed her off immediately.

“Do you have a headache?” Anya questioned the girl, voice underlined with strictness.

Marie’s brows knitted together and she quickly shook her head in the negative, confusion clouding her eyes.

Anya brought a hand to Marie’s face and collected some of the blood running from Marie’s nose, showing it to the girl. She felt painfully reminded of finding the girl delirious behind herself on the horse, while they had rescued Clarke.

Marie’s eyes widened slightly at the sight and she quickly wiped at her nose, trying to remove the blood, but with her mostly wet fingers, she made it even worse, diluting the blood, so that pink drops trailed down her chin.

“Tilt your head back” Lexa instructed and she and Anya watched Marie follow her order in silence, waiting for a few moments until the bleeding stopped again. Marie did not appear to have bled much, but it was still worrying that her nose was randomly bleeding. Lexa could not help her eyes seeking out the girl’s ears quickly, checking that she was not bleeding from them additionally. The image of the blood tinting Marie’s blonde hair and the bandage red in the medical bay of Arkadia would remain ingrained in her memory forever.

Marie pushed the instance of her having a slight nosebleed two days ago already, from her mind forcefully. She had not thought it important to tell Lexa and Anya. Now, they were going off into war on the next day, a bleeding nose was hardly that worrying in comparison, but she still hoped internally that she would not continue to have nosebleeds randomly now.

An almost hazy memory pushed itself into Marie’s mind. She was not entirely sure anymore, but she suddenly could remember her mother having had nosebleeds often as well. The woman had always tried to hide them from her, sending her off to play for at least a few minutes. Her mother had gotten sick months later and had never recovered. She pushed the thought forcefully from her mind, she was not sick after all. Marie was certain that a bleeding nose was certainly nothing to worry about like that.

Lexa frowned, when she noticed how the girl suddenly got pale “Are you feeling sick?” she asked, putting a hand gently on one of her shoulders.

Marie shook her head again in the negative “Do you have more meetings today?” she asked back, diverting their attention from herself with that, putting on an innocent look. She truly hoped that Lexa and Anya would stay within the commander’s quarters now, so that they could spend a few quiet hours together.

“No, Marie” Lexa assured with a smile pulling at the corners of her lips, at the clear relief and joy flashing through the child’s grey eyes.

Anya offered a hand to the girl “You have surely stayed in long enough now” she said. The girl had bathed the day before and had not needed a bath at all, but obviously Lexa had indulged the girl once again.

Marie pouted visibly for a moment, but finally took the general’s hand, letting the woman hoist her to her feet. She almost slipped in the wet bathing tube and she smiled up sheepishly at Anya, when the woman steadied her quickly, saving her from falling over.

Anya’s eyes trailed over the girl’s body, while she enveloped her into a soft towel. The wounds which Marie had caused herself a few days ago, had mostly healed, but a scab still remained over the places where she had cut away Nia’s kill marks.

Lexa stood from the bath as well, drying off quickly and dressing into a pair of comfortable trousers and a loose-fitting shirt.

Marie jawed slightly, trying hard to supress the urge, but failing at it. “I am not so tired” she immediately exclaimed, not wanting to be send to bed so early.

“Of course, not” Anya agreed in a sarcastic tone and a snort under her breath, rolling her eyes at the girl. If the girl was truly so exhausted, although she was certain that she could not have exerted her so much during training, that she fell asleep in the bath, it was surely better to have the child rest for as long as possible.

“I don’t wanna go to bed yet, Mama” Marie almost whined, looking up at the woman with her best innocent look.

Anya felt her insistence melt away quickly, knowing that this would be the last few peaceful hours they could offer to Marie. “What do you wish to do then?” she asked with a slight smile, slipping a shirt over the girl’s head.

Marie smiled brightly in reaction, grey eyes shining and she tilted her head to the side slightly, clearly thinking about what she wanted now. She was certain that Lexa would readily read something to her later, but she guessed that she would be lulled to sleep too quickly and she wanted something else now.

“I wanna braid your hair” she exclaimed with conviction, looking up at Anya hopefully with a tentative smile.

Anya sighed under her breath, but nodded in acceptance, while Marie made a whooping sound of joy, Lexa bandied a silent look with her former mentor.

Lexa knew that so far, she had given in way more easily to everything Marie had actively asked for, but it seemed that Anya’s resistance to the girl’s puppy dog eyes was finally thinning as well. The slightly murderous glance Anya had sent her, clearly daring her to say anything, clearly showed that the woman was aware of the fact that she was now the one to indulge Marie as well.

 

Chapter 220

On the next morning, before the sun even began to ascend, Lexa and Anya woke almost simultaneously.

Marie had slept restless and both women had been required to sooth the child back to sleep or prevent her from fully waking often through the night. It was obvious that the prospect of the impending war was unsettling the blonde girl greatly and they had needed to sleep closely spaced together to get the girl to settle down at all.

Ontari had probably been the only one within the commander’s quarters who had slept undisturbed through the whole night as both women had always been woken by Marie twisting and turning, before she could make much sound at all.

Anya stood up from the huge bed first, while Lexa tried to wake Marie up; the child had finally been sleeping totally entangled with Lexa. The general only minutely gazed down at Marie, but teared her eyes away quickly and stepped over to the couch, giving Ontari’s shoulder a shake to rouse the nightblood girl as well.

Ontari’s dark eyes snapped open immediately upon the brief physical contact and her features were grim and serious, as she sat up. She rolled her shoulders experimentally, relieved to feel only a minor discomfort in the injured shoulder and she was sure that the limb would be completely healed in another day or two.

“Marie, wake up” Lexa softly addressed the girl, shaking her shoulder slightly, trying to entangle herself from the sleeping child simultaneously.

Marie let out a mixture of a whine and a huff and her arms only tightened around Lexa’s frame.

Lexa’s lips tilted into the hint of a smile as she let a hand glide over the girl’s back for a few moments. Marie’s breathing pattern had changed noticeably, so the girl was obviously awake but simply refused to let go for now.

When Marie refused to move a few moments later on her own, Lexa sighed under her breath. She could guess what the girl was hoping for. If they did not stand up now, they might not leave the capitol at all, so the girl was stalling for time. “Marie, it is time to stand up now” Lexa said, tone gentle but underlined with strictness.

Marie finally opened her eyes and her gaze was filled with clear fear of what would come to pass in the immediate future.

“It will be alright, little star” Lexa tried to reassure the girl in a firm tone. She knew that she could sensibly not promise that they would return to Polis, they could only hope for the best now.

Marie swallowed visibly, her lower lip trembling for a moment, before her grey eyes flashed with something too quick to pin down and her expression turned visibly harder as the girl steeled herself. Marie knew that she was the commander’s second and she had known for months now, that this war was coming, she could not stop it, but she would be in her rightful place, beside Lexa and Anya.

~ ~ ~

The atmosphere in the commander’s chambers remained rather tense and bleak, not even Marie had anything to say now anymore, so they got ready in silence.

Anya had to forcefully order Marie to at least eat a little bit of her portion of the light breakfast, or the girl would probably not have even touched the plate to begin with.

Marie sat upright tensely, when Alira returned to do the commander’s and her hair. She frowned when she noted on the different clothing the handmaid was wearing, indication clearly that the woman would also be accompanying the army into Ice Nation.

Risha followed on the handmaiden’s heels, tail wagging at Marie immediately, trotting over to her human, sitting down obediently and placing her snout on Marie’s thighs, waiting to be caressed.

Marie’s smile was shaky at best, as she gazed down at the wolf, letting her fingers glide through its soft fur absentmindedly. It just occurred to her now, that she had no idea if the wolf would be able to accompany them as well or if Risha would be required to remain behind in the capitol. She turned her grey eyes to Anya, seeing the definite tenseness in the general’s feature, she switched her gaze to Lexa, the commander appeared slightly tense as well, but not as much as Anya, so she addressed Lexa “Will Risha come with us?”.

Lexa looked over at the girl for a moment in silence, contemplating her answer. Taking the wolf with them would certainly add some additional protection to Marie, but the animal was untrained still and they still had not tried how accepting the horses would be now of the grown wolf. Risha would be required to run next to the horses and if they shooed, it could easily cause an accident. So, after a silent of contemplating, she shook her head in the negative “Risha is not trained enough yet to accompany the army.” She had been in the process of applying war paint to her face and halted with the brush hovering in front of her face, when Marie spoke up again.

Marie’s expression fell notably and a pout appeared on her face “She’ll behave…” she tried to promise, grey eyes hopeful and tone pleading slightly.

Anya snorted under her breath, wondering just how the girl assumed to be able to control the wolf from atop a horse, they had never tried to take Risha with them yet, so she stood with Lexa’s decision.

Lexa shook her head again, expression taking on a definitely stricter note, although her tone remained kind and calm “No, Marie, and the decision is final” she proclaimed, green eyes steadily gazing at the girl.

Marie’s shoulders dropped visibly and her pout deepened for a moment, before she sighed, bending down and enveloping Risha in a hug “Gonna miss you, girl” she whispered into the animal’s ears. She let out a mixture of a giggle and a shriek, when Risha licked over her face while she backed off from the wolf.

Ontari watched the scene with clear disgust flashing over her features. Although she had truly gotten used to the more or less constant presence of the wolf in their rooms, she would probably never share the connection Marie had with the wolf. She was not afraid any more of the wolf, knowing that the animal truly meant no harm, but she would not wish to be licked by Risha either and definitely not through the face.

The breakfast went over far too quickly for Marie’s liking and Anya ushered her to leave the table and assisted her in dressing into some clothes fit for travel. They would not yet dress into truly warm clothes, but she knew that they would not take long before they passed a sort of a weather boundary and the temperature would drop drastically then.

Handmaidens had already prepared all of their luggage and it had already been moved from the commander’s quarters and was probably at the moment laden onto horses for them.

“How long do you think we will need to travel?” Marie asked Anya, while standing still as the general helped her put on a few pieces of light leather armour. She had not worn armour for some time now and although the armour was light and probably from superior quality, Marie was acutely aware of its weight. It felt even weirder to her, when Anya finally applied war paint to her features for her as well.

Anya huffed under her breath slightly “That is hard to tell” she answered vaguely. A lot would be depending on how the villages they would ultimately travel through be reacting to them. If they would not be met with much resistance to begin with, they could continue on quicker. It would play out differently, if Nia had moved troops further into the direction of their shared bored. Although Lexa and she agreed that the likelihood of such an occurrence was extremely low, it was not impossible either.

A part of the army, where most of the warriors travelled on foot, had already left the capitol on the previous day and the group which would accompany them, would all be riding horses and by thus be quickly able to catch up with the rest of the army on the way.

Under normal conditions the journey should not take them more than a couple of days, but winter was fast approaching as well and it would already have hit the lands of Ice Nation and Anya was worried that they would need to travel at a much slower pace than they wanted to originally.

Marie frowned slightly at the vague at best answer, but she kept silent for now, sensing that Anya was not exactly in a chatty mood at the moment. Impulsively she closed the slight distance between them, once Anya had finished in helping her fasten the armour, and she wound her arms around the woman’s midriff, hugging her mutely for long moments.

Anya looked down at the girl with soft brown eyes, expression gentled considerably. She let her hands settle on the girl’s shoulders, giving them a reassuring squeeze, before she bent down lightly, placing a kiss on the girl’s hairline in a gentle gesture.

Marie hummed lightly in response, tightening her arms around the woman for a moment.

“Do not be afraid, little star” Anya said to the child in an intent tone “We will all be protecting you, Nia will not get the chance to hurt even another hair on your head” she added with blazing brown eyes.

Marie mutely searched Anya’s eyes for her sincerity for long moments, before she nodded finally. She did not doubt anymore that Lexa and Anya would protect her to their last dying breath and she was fairly certain that Ontari would fight to protect her from harm as well. The thought of having to face Nia again, paralysed something within her mind and she sucked in a rather harsh breath. The absolute certainty she could see in Anya’s eyes, loosened some of her internal fright again.

Anya squeezed the girl’s shoulders once again, as Lexa stepped up to them and nodded to the general once.

“Will I be riding with one of you?” Marie asked, once Anya finally backed off from her.

Anya shook her head “Ontari and you are both going to get your own horses” she answered. She had spoken with the stablemaster himself two days ago, trying to figure out which mounts to be best pair with her charges. They had chosen an older and experienced warhorse for Marie and the mount should be relatively easy to steer for the girl. Ontari would be riding a slightly younger warhorse, but Anya had no doubt in mind that the Ice Nation nightblood would be able to hold control over it.

Ontari stayed slightly in the background, when Marie halted the commander, the Trikru woman had obviously already wanted to leave her quarters. But the younger girl impulsively threw herself at the woman and Ontari was fairly certain that the contrast would forever look slightly weird to her eye, of how the might commander, dressed in all her regalia, was hugging a child with a clearly loving expression, so casually.

She was surprised deeply by the general stepping closer to her, squeezing one of her shoulders as well in a clearly kind gesture and Ontari met the woman’s brown eyes with open confusion, unsure of what to say, or if she was even required to say anything at all.

~ ~ ~

The streets of the capitol were already filled with a lot of people when they all together left the tower. The sun had not yet ascended fully, but it was obvious that the citizens of the capitol wished to see the army and their leader leaving.

Gustus and Ryder had fallen into step slightly in front of the commander at the basement of the tower and the prepared horses were already waiting for them.

Anya snorted under her breath, when her own steed and the commander’s horse both, quiet obviously wanted to get to Marie at first glance.

Marie gave both women a slightly sheepish glance, as she quickly obliged to the horses demands, letting her fingers caress over the soft skin of their noses.

Ontari gave the general a side-way glance, not exactly sure what was amusing in this kind of situation now.

Anya noticed Ontari’s glance and as stepped closer to her own steed, she said “Apparently, our horses have taken to Marie immediately. The both of them are rather being petted by her than anything else”.

Ontari raised a brow in disbelieve at the general, although the brown horse truly seemed focused solely on the younger girl, not really paying its actual rider much of attention at all.

“You will ride this one” Anya proclaimed, motioning Ontari over to a grey mare.

Ontari nodded, stretching out a hand towards the horse, palm upwards and waited until the horse had sniffed at her fingers, ears flicking around for a moment, before the horse neighed slightly.

Anya nodded with a satisfied expression, some of the warriors of their group had already mounted their own horses and she motioned Ontari to do the same, before she finally called Marie over to the horse she would be given for now.

Marie’s grey eyes immediately connected with the horse’s dark ones and she smiled at the animal, offering both of her hands to the unknown horse to sniff at, while she spoke to it in a soft tone “Hi there, do you have a name?”

Anya snorted again, lightly shaking her head at the girl’s antics “Mount up” she ordered, offering her help to hoist the girl up into the saddle. She waited until the girl was sitting securely atop of the horse and she had one hand resting on Marie’s thigh, she nodded to her mutely, before she stepped away from the horse, back to her own steed and mounted as well.

Only Lexa was the only one not on top of her mount yet. Titus had followed them out of the tower and the commander was exchanging last orders with the flamekeeper, she was after all entrusting him with the keep of the capitol and the coalition once again. She distinctly hoped that she would at one point be able to let her oldest nightbloods reign over the capitol in times of her being away from Polis, it would surely be able to much better prepare them for their later duties.

Lexa shook such thoughts from her mind, discarding them as unimportant for now.

“Return safely” was the only farewell Titus said and although his expression seemed blank, his dark eyes showed the care he still had for the commander.

Lexa inclined her head mutely, turning from her former teacher and minutely letting her eyes travel over the group of warriors, waiting for her command.

The group mostly consisted of those warriors which were the most trusted from Trikru. But there were also elite warriors from a few other clans and the Skykru delegation would travel with them as well. Lexa had been hesitant to let them accompany the rest of the army, she knew just how many warriors were still uneasy to be around firearms of the Mountain again.

Her eyes only shortly flitted over the Skykru delegation and she was not surprised in the slightest to spot Clarke among them. If the woman was one thing, she was stubborn and Clarke had been insistent in her wish to be part of the army even before their break up.

A part of her mind was glad to see Clarke there, knowing that the woman would not be too far out of reach and she would at least see her regularly still. But a larger part of her would have preferred for the blonde Skykru healer to stay within the capitol, protected and safe.

Lexa forced all further thought of Clarke harshly from her mind, knowing all too well that she could not allow herself to dwell on what she and Clarke had lost, it would be a weakness and she could not present weakness to Nia, not if she wished to return victorious.

She was not surprised to see so many of Polis citizens already on their feet, flanking the streets, as far as she could see. She knew just how loved she was as a leader by her people and Lexa took great pride of that fact.

She mounted her horse in one fluid motion and as she gazed over the group of warriors and the assembled crowd once again, there was no need for a long speech, but rather a loud shout left her lips “To war!”

The commander’s proclamation was echoed loudly by the warriors and the group began to move as soon as Lexa gave the sign.

 

 

 

 

 

Chapter 23: Chapter 221 - 230

Chapter Text

Chapter 221

Marie did not know for sure for how long they already been travelling by now. But her thighs were protesting painfully against the unfamiliar strain of having to sit in a saddle for hours without break.

Lexa had set a brisk and quick pace for the small unit of the army, so that they should be able to catch up with the rest of the army fairly quickly.

Smaller groups of scouts travelled in circles around them, making sure that no hidden assassins could suddenly make an attack in a last vain attempt from Nia to prevent the war from taking place at all.

Marie internally wondered how long they would need to travel until they reached the queen’s fortress. She did not give voice to her thoughts though. She was riding flanked by Anya and Lexa and both women did not appear to wish to speak at the current moment. To Marie it seemed, as if Anya was constantly looking around them, searching for a potential threat. She guessed that doing so was pretty unnecessary with all the scouts making rounds around their group.

“Are we still on Trikru lands?” Marie asked, turning her gaze to Anya. She had noticed that the thick forests around them had begun to thin ahead of them, but she had not noticed if they might have crossed the border already or not. She had heard in one meeting that a blockade had been put into place at the borders between Trikru und Ice Nation, so she thought that such a blockade should have been noticeable.

Anya’s brown eyes narrowed slightly at the girl’s inattentiveness. She had personally held quiet a number of lessons with Marie, trying to instil certain landmarks into the child’s mind surrounding Polis and she should be able by now to distinguish between them.

Before Anya could say anything, Lexa chimed in, sensing the general’s displeasure at the girl’s mere question “No, Marie, we have not yet passed by the fallen trees”. The commander’s tone was kind, while she minutely bandied a look with her previous mentor, clearly telling her to let the matter slide for now.

Marie frowned for a moment, before a sheepish look passed over her features “Oh, I forgot about those” she commented lowly, picking at a lose threat on the reigns slightly. She gave Anya an innocent smile, hoping that the woman would not be angry with her, she remembered the lessons about them now. On the way back from the queen’s fortress, Ontari had led them on a different path, so that they had not crossed these special trees.

Anya rolled her eyes at the girl, before she returned her gaze back ahead of them. Her eyes may be focused on the way in front of them, but from the corner of her eyes, Anya had kept Marie under close surveillance the whole time since they had left Polis. Both Lexa and she were worried how Marie would react once the fighting began; they did not doubt for a second that the girl would side with Nia all of a sudden. But they knew how mentally fragile the girl was at the moment, so it was impossible to predict just how she would react.

Occasionally, she looked over at the Ice Nation nightblood riding on her other side. Ontari did not show outwardly if she might be in any kind of pain, the girl had not said a single word since they left Polis and her expression was stoic and blank. Anya knew that the girl had as many reasons to look forward to Nia’s impending downfall.

Anya highly doubted that they would be able to continue for much longer without stopping to make a short break. The group of Skykru which travelled with them would surely not be used to their ways of travel and their pace would be even harder for them. In the back of her mind, she also hoped that the journey would not be too hard for Marie as well.

~ ~ ~

Marie’s eyes widened once the fallen trees came into view. Anya’s words had truly not done justice to how they really looked like.

Anya smirked slightly, when she watched Marie’s reaction. The girl’s grey eyes shone visibly and awe clouded her features.

No one knew, why the trees grew in the way they did. But in a patch of around two hundred metres the tree trunks had not grown horizontally like they were supposed to, but rather in a height of only around a metre, all the trunks had grown towards the earth.

“Are they still alive?” Marie asked, wonder and confusion mixed in her tone. It appeared as if the trees even still had foliage, but it looked rather weird, scattered over the ground.

Anya nodded in mute agreement. No one knew exactly since when the trees had been like this, but they were even still growing.

Lexa suddenly pulled on her reigns, raising a hand and by thus stopping the whole group in their tracks “We will make a break here” she proclaimed loudly.

Marie sighed gratefully and she glanced down at the ground with a slight frown. Her legs felt weird and she was not sure if she would be able to get down from the horse without crumbling to the ground.

“Won’t you get down?” Ontari suddenly stood beside her grey horse, having dismounted already and wondering why the younger girl was still on her mount. When Marie still had not moved a moment later, she stretched out her hands, offering to help the girl from the horse.

Marie smiled in thanks, accepting the older girl’s hands and she kept her holding on to Ontari’s arms once she felt the ground beneath her feet again; her legs were tingling uncomfortably and her knees felt far weaker than they should.

“The border is not far away now, right?” Marie asked, looking up at Ontari. In the background she could see Lexa and Anya speaking to generals, she did not know the names of.

Ontari shook her head “We will pass it within the next hour. It will get colder soon” she answered easily. She knew that borders between Trikru and Azgeda well and they should soon be able to see the blockade. She also knew that they would also soon travel through the first villages of Ice Nation and she internally feared what they might find. She was certain that Nia would not have lifted a finger to help the smaller villages close to the border and the blockade had been long enough in place now, that these villages would have been hit the hardest by the forced isolation and stopped trade.

Marie frowned slightly, when she noted the slight worry within Ontari’s dark eyes. “Do you think the villagers will put up a fight?” she asked the older girl lowly.

Ontari shook her head “I doubt that they still can” she commented darkly, but she did not elaborate when Marie’s frown only visibly deepened.

Marie’s attention was diverted from Ontari, when she felt Anya’s hands settle on her shoulders. She glanced up with a soft smile at the woman, leaning back slightly, feeling Anya’s body heat almost enveloping her. She had not realized before, but it had already turned colder and she shivered slightly, as she leaned back fully against Anya.

Anya put a hand on the girl’s forehead, checking her temperature quickly, when she noticed that the girl was shivering. Fortunately, it did not appear as if the child was running a fever. She gently nudged Marie back into the direction of her own horse, as she knew that some spare clothing had been stored in her own saddlebacks for Marie and herself.

Marie followed Anya willingly and her gaze quickly travelled over the group which accompanied them. She had already recognized that most of the warriors came from Trikru, beside the group of Skykru. All of them had more or less fallen from their horses, shaking out their legs with slight grimaces on their faces.

Anya’s eyes fell on the same scene and a disparaging look crossed her features “Still weak as newborns” she muttered under her breath with a clear note of impatience in her tone. Their travels had barely begun after all and they still had a lot of way to cover before the commander would call for them to rest for the night.

Marie’s gaze flitted up to her mentor shortly and she lowered her eyes with guilt clouding her expression, she did not feel as if she was faring much better than the rest of Skykru was.

Lexa frowned slightly, she had stopped her talk with the two generals from Shallow Valley and the Broadleaf clan and she had turned towards Marie and Anya just in time to see clear guilt flit over the girl’s features. Her gaze shortly followed Anya’s to the group of Skykru, almost all of them were visibly showing their discomfort from the last few hours in a saddle. When Anya still muttered some critics about the Skykru under her breath, it clicked in Lexa’s mind, that Marie must have taken the general’s words personally.

She wordlessly took the clothing intended for Marie out of Anya’s hands, ignoring her clear look of confusion and instead stepped closer to Marie. The rest of the warriors were giving them enough space, that Lexa did not have to fear her words being caught by them. She motioned for Marie to strip out of the thin coat, holding up a warmer shirt for the child.

“You are holding up just fine, Marie" she reassured the girl in a soft tone, while helping the child slip her arms into the long sleeves.

Surprise flashed over Marie’s features at the commander’s words, before doubt clouded her gaze minutely.

Lexa squeezed the girl’s shoulders reassuringly and her green eyes looked down kindly on the child.

Marie swallowed once, visibly straightening herself again before she stepped back a little from Lexa, who now held open a warmer coat for her. She gave the woman the hint of a grateful smile, when Lexa stepped around her, fastening straps over the cloak.

The break was over much quicker than Marie would have liked and soon, Lexa called for the group to get back onto their mounts.

Ontari mutely helped her up on her grey horse. She would have probably managed to get up without assistance, but the horse really was huge and it was probably better to accept her help than visibly fail to mount the horse on her own.

Marie was still a little confused by the grounders sense of pride in that regard. On the one hand, they clearly believed in strength and being able to cope with everything on their own. But at the same time it was regarded as shameful to fail at something when help had been available. She knew that Lexa, Anya and Ontari would not have truly thought any less of her, if she did not manage to get on the horse on her own, but she did not want to ridicule herself in front of the other warriors like that.

~ ~ ~

Marie was surprised to see just how many warriors were upholding the blockade, once they got near enough to the border to see it ahead of them. She had somehow envisioned a few scarce warriors fighting against soldiers and people from Ice Nation constantly. But it was rather obvious that there barely had been any fighting to begin with. Lexa had sent so many warriors to enforce the blockade, that Azgeda had probably known that trying to break through would have been a useless waste of manpower.

So, it did not really come as a surprise when she learned that a great portion of the warriors from the blockade would begin to travel behind them as reinforcement if necessary.

Marie internally wondered just how deep into Ice Nation lands they would need to travel to find the queen and her own army. From what she remembered of the queen, she was convinced that the woman would be sitting in a fortress, guarded with probably the complete army at her hand.

She glanced over her shoulder minutely, the group of Skykru had obviously been given warmer clothes as well. She still remembered a few of them from their landing on earth and how they had looked then. The contrast was really stark now with the warm fur laced grounder clothing.

Internally Marie could not help herself but remember the sketch Clarke had done almost immediately after her return from the queen to Polis. She shuddered involuntarily, hoping that her physical appearance had truly begun to change again. She did not want to be the girl the queen had forced her to be.

Maybe she would ask Clarke at one point to do a newer sketch of her. Lexa might have chosen against forgiving the blonde woman for now, but Marie had noticed the glances the both of them were shooting each other from time to time and the longing within both their eyes was painfully obvious as well. She would be lying if she said that she was not glad for a selfish reason that Clarke was now travelling with the army solely as a part of Skykru and not as Lexa’s love. But the thought more and more pushed into her mind that Lexa was truly unhappy with her decision and she still did not understand why the woman had made the decision if it was paining her in such a fashion. She knew that now was certainly not the time to ask her, but she would in private at one point.

~ ~ ~

The tension in the group mounted visibly when they neared the first bigger village and Marie dearly hoped that they would soon stop for the day. It could not be long now until the sun would set and she felt utterly exhausted.

They had already passed a few abandoned single huts some time ago and Ontari had quickly explained to Marie that the inhabitants had probably sought shelter in a bigger village or had starved on the way there. Marie had looked at the older girl with wide eyes, hoping that she was not correct in her assessment. She had seen that a few warriors had searched through the huts, coming out again only moments later, not finding anyone living there anymore.

Marie frowned slightly, when Anya steered her brown horse even closer to her own mount. She spotted one of the general’s hand resting on a dagger on her thigh, obviously prepared to pull it out and protect them at a moment’s notice. She opened her mouth to tentatively asked why Anya was so tense, but the woman mutely shook her head, silencing her efficiently.

Marie’s brows knitted together when they truly entered the village. The group of scouts preceding them, had obviously already forced all inhabitants of the village out of their huts and Marie could see quiet a great number of people kneeling in front of them.

Lexa called the whole group to a stop, dismounting quickly and scrutinizing the Ice Nation people with suspicious eyes. It was obvious that the blockade had hit this village full force, the people were all visibly thin and they seemed almost afraid.

She kept her expression stoic and blank, as she raised her voice, her eyes minutely flitting to the few children clinging to their parents with wide frightened eyes. It did not look as if one of them was contemplating to attack and she could not spot signs of a fight either. “No one will be harmed, food and supplies will be distributed among you, until the blockade can be lifted again”.

Marie watched on with interest how the scouts slowly eased away from the inhabitants of the village and she smiled slightly when she noted the obvious relief of the people.

Lexa looked back over her shoulder at Marie, noting on the way the girl’s shoulders were slumped slightly in clear exhaustion. They had travelled through most of the day by now, with only one longer pause and she knew that they would be able to catch up with the rest of the army either on the next day or the day after at the latest, closing their ranks before they would reach Nia’s fortress. She nodded towards her generals “We shall make camp here for the night”. Stopping here for the night was saver than staying out in the open.

Marie let out a small relieved sigh under her breath at the news and she did not hesitate for a second to accept Anya’s help to get down from the horse. The village looked different from TonDC and she could not spot a single building which seemed to remain from the old world still. The huts mostly appeared much bigger than the ones in TonDC and Marie learned later that several families shared one.

Marie shook out her legs carefully, keeping in a little groan of discomfort. She internally wondered just how she would be able to get back onto the horse on the next morning. She looked over the people from the village a little closer, when she followed Anya towards Lexa, who was speaking with the village elder.

“…thank you, commander” Marie heard the old man say, as they stepped closer. She gave Anya a short soft smile, when she felt the general’s arm settle over one of her shoulders.

Lexa inclined her head “My fight is with Nia, not with Ice Nation” she clarified in a decisive tone. In their vicinity she could already see warriors beginning to unload a few of the extra provisions.

Ontari stayed behind at the horses, letting her gaze wander around the village. She remembered having been here years ago already. As one of the villages closest to the border to Trikru, it had often been the place of the warriors to gather before setting out to their skirmishes with the Trikru warriors. She remembered also that the village had been very loyal to Nia in the past, it surprised her that there had not seemed to have been any kind of resistance from them.

~ ~ ~

It took some time for the group of warriors to either erect tents for themselves or be assigned to one of the large huts. The inhabitants of the village had all been very accommodating and opened as much free space as possible in the buildings of the village.

Lexa had reclined the offer of a complete hut for herself, opting to use the commander’s tent instead. It would certainly allow for more privacy with Anya and Marie. The general had asked her beforehand that she wanted to Ontari to also sleep with them, the tent was large enough after all.

A large fire had been lit in the middle of the village and fresh meat was roasted over the fire, filling the crisp cold air with an appetising smell of food.

Marie stood beside Ontari at the fire, Lexa and Anya on her other side, speaking with the village elder about how the blockade had affected the village. Marie suppressed a jaw with all her might, now that she had finally gotten from the horse and her legs felt mostly normal again, she felt the exhaustion settle into her body. Her stomach grumbled slightly in hunger, their break for lunch was long ago now.

She still thought it weird that the group of Skykru kept closely to themselves, standing isolated at one side of the fire, not really speaking with anyone beside themselves. She wondered if the scene would look different now, if Clarke was standing beside Lexa.

The longer the gathering around the fire stretched, the lower Marie’s mood became, she was tired and wanted to lie down. But neither Lexa nor Anya showed any intention yet of retiring for the night.

“What is it?” Ontari asked the younger girl under her breath. She was trying to listen to the talk ongoing around the fire, but Marie’s increasing shuffling was distracting her.

Marie shrugged her shoulders, a small pout on her lips, she had just opened her mouth to answer verbally, when the older girl looked away.

Ontari’s attention was caught by a group of three younger men, nearing the general and commander and their expressions were somehow alarming to her. They somehow reeked of trouble already and she turned her full attention to them. Her premonition was proven, when the three of them suddenly had daggers in their hands and boldly attacked the commander, shouts of “For the queen!” tumbling from their lips. Following on instinct, Ontari charged forward as well, at the same time as Gustus and Anya did.

Marie watched the scene play out with widened eyes. Before she could really process what was happening, everything was over already.

The village elder was apologizing rapidly, the villagers all seemed equally afraid of what this would mean for them.

Lexa seemed the only one barely affected at all, green eyes staring down emotionless at the three men. Two of them already dead, one killed by Gustus and the second actually having been killed by Ontari.

Anya had the third one subdued, a gash bled on her own side, concealed by her coat.

Lexa’s mask was firmly in place, as she slit the man’s throat without hesitation “Burn them” she proclaimed loudly, turning on her heels and walking off in the direction of her tent without another word.

 

 

Chapter 222

Marie had watched the proceedings with widened eyes and her heart hammered quickly in her chest. No matter how hard she tried, she could not tear her eyes from the corpses on the ground, barely a few feet away. Red blood slowly ran from the body of the man with his slit throat, inching closer to her with every second.

Marie startled strongly, when Anya suddenly stood in front of her. She blinked a few times, as her mind slowly processed that she must have spaced out for some time. The corpses had already been moved and there was no sign of Lexa anywhere around.

Anya looked down on the girl with worry passing through her eyes, the girl had not moved an inch during the whole incident, obviously frozen in place in shock. Such a reaction did not sit well with her at all, once the real fighting began they would need to know that Marie would at least be protecting herself or taking her with them into battle would prove dangerous for all of them.

A sheepish expression settled into Marie’s features and without further thought, she slung her arms around Anya’s midriff, giving her a quick hug and taking in a deep shuddering breath, as her heart slowly began to calm as well. The people had appeared all friendly on the first glance and she had not expected that anyone would try to assassinate Lexa. Now that she thought of it, it made sense though. The war would surely not take place if the commander died after all.

Anya bit back a pained hiss as the girl slung her arms around her midriff, putting pressure onto the bleeding gash on her side. She knew that she needed to get seen to by a healer. Her eyes flitted over to Ontari shortly, the girl had reacted exceptionally and if there had been any lingering doubt about her loyalty to Nia, it was completely erased now. The nightblood girl had almost instinctively protected the commander. Anya remembered that Ontari had told her to have been trained as a personal guard to Nia before and that had shown just now. She nodded to her older charge, who had suggested to stay by the fire to make sure that none of the other villagers might try to make an attempt against Lexa again. The girl had not sustained any injuries, so she had agreed.

Marie frowned when she backed off from Anya slightly and her eyes widened when she spotted the fresh blood now smeared onto one of the sleeves of her coat. Her eyes searched over Anya’s form quickly, trying to locate the source of the blood, hoping internally that it not been hers at all. Her frown deepened when she spotted a suspiciously wet looking dark patch on the woman’s side. She itched to reach out and simply heal it for her, but a quick glance around them told her that too many people were watching currently for that to go over unnoticed. She was still worried about how deep the wound would be, Anya’s expression gave nothing away and she did not even show that she must in any kind of pain at all.

Anya’s lips thinned slightly; the girl’s thoughts had been more than obvious on her features. “Don’t even think of it" she told the child in a quick whisper, grasping onto one of her shoulders and steering her in the direction of the commander’s tent.

Marie hurried to keep up with Anya’s brisk pace without stumbling. If Lexa had not been hurt, there probably would not be a healer at all yet in the tent, so she could still heal Anya then.

The commander was alone when they entered the tent, Ryder and Gustus stood guard and a few others circled around the commander’s tent, making sure that no one could enter from any other way than the main entrance as well.

Lexa took a deep breath, when she heard Anya and Marie join her. She had expected that something like this could happen, but she was nevertheless angered that it had. Three men had died a senseless death in a vain attempt to protect a queen, who did not deserve any kind of loyalty at all. She could have easily ordered her army to raze down all villages on their way, nearly erasing Azgeda from existence in the process. She had decided firmly against that approach and yet, this was the gratitude she received for her efforts.

Anya hissed audibly, when Marie reached out as soon as the tent flap had fallen close behind them and the bleeding wound on her side knitted itself back together in seconds. As soon as the burning sensation of the healing had faded, Anya felt fresh bursts of energy course through her veins and she sighed in resignation at the girl. There was no use any more in trying to discourage her from using her talent so frequently. The only possibility to hinder Marie from doing so, would be to keep the girl firmly distanced from them and that was no real option in her mind at all.

Marie’s grey eyes were determined when she met the general’s gaze. She would not apologise for healing the woman’s wounds. She felt it as her responsibility to make sure that Lexa and she were not injured. It was a real way for her to contribute and she would continue to do so. She could stop again, when the war was over and they were not in such grave danger any longer.

“Thank you, little star" Anya finally settled on saying, brown eyes gentle, as she pushed the worry for the girl into a far corner of her mind. Marie did not seem to suffer any repercussions from using her talent so frequently in the last days and it was obvious that the child felt helpful healing them like that.

Marie’s features brightened with a smile and she hugged the general again shortly. She backed off from her again and her smile froze when she noted how grave Lexa’s expression was.

She stepped closer to the commander slowly, grey eyes looking up at the woman filled with compassion “I am sorry that they attacked you” she offered in a sad honest tone.

Lexa sighed under her breath, giving the child the hint of a smile for her efforts.

Marie looked the woman over quickly as well, trying to see if the commander had suffered any injuries as well. She tried calling forth her talent, stepping even closer to Lexa and giving her a hug as well.

Anya frowned when she watched the girl’s hands glow golden for the briefest moment as she made contact with Lexa. She was sure that her previous second had not been injured at all during the confrontation, so there should be no wounds to heal.

Lexa’s eyes narrowed at the girl as she slightly nudged her away from her. She had felt the tension of the day’s journey drain from her body instantly, her muscles loose and refreshed again. But there had been no wounds to heal at all. So far Marie had only healed obvious wounds and not simply used her power to replenish their energy. It worried her somehow that the girl was able to do so at all, the energy for her talent must be coming from somewhere after all. The soft smile the girl gave her, soothed her worry slightly, as there was no obvious sign so far that Marie had any side effects at all.

“Are we going to bed now?” Marie asked, a slight hint of hope apparent in her tone.

Lexa shook her head in the negative. They needed to return outside to the fire, joining back with the villagers, showing that there would be no repercussion to what had happened.

~ ~ ~

Marie kept close to Anya once they stepped out of the tent. In the distance she could easily spot the quickly erected pyre and the three corpses burning.

The atmosphere around the fire had changed almost painfully, the villagers seemed afraid to breathe too loudly.

Marie glanced up at Anya minutely, when the general squeezed her shoulders once, before the woman left her at the fire, joining back with the other generals. She searched through the crowd for Ontari and her eyes travelled over the group of Skykru.

Her eyes stayed on Clarke, Raven and Bellamy for long moments, observing the three of them in silence. Clarke seemed solely focused on Lexa, barely sparing the two beside her any glance. Bellamy visibly was annoyed to be ignored like that and his dark eyes kept on flitting to the family from the village beside them in obvious suspicion. Raven’s expression was hard to decipher for Marie, as she was not familiar enough with the brunette mechanic to know her mannerism like that.

Marie was interrupted by the Ice Nation nightblood girl suddenly appearing right in front of her. She looked the older girl over quickly as well; she had not even considered that Ontari might have gotten injured as well.

The corners of Ontari’s lips lifted upwards into the hint of a smile “I am alright” she reassured the younger girl quickly, knowing Marie’s way of thinking well enough by now that the girl did not need to articulate her worry at all. No one had ever truly worried for her in such a fashion and she was still slightly touched by the younger girl’s compassion.

Marie nodded mutely in acknowledgement, while she turned her eyes back towards the fire. On the other side of the fire, she could spot two families of villagers, both seemed to consist of at least four children each. At least three of them were her own age and she bit back a slight giggle, when one of the boys caught her eyes, making a funny grimace at her across the fire.

Ontari’s attention was called by a boy approaching her boldly. He was one of the villagers and she judged them to be similar in age. The scars of Ice Nation adorned his famished face, but his dark eyes glittered in something akin to admiration as he approached her, asking her straightforward about her training with the royal guard of Azgeda.

Marie tilted her head sideways slightly and a pout took over her expression when Ontari solely focused on the older boy now. The boy had spared her not even a single glance and she tapped her foot impatiently. She frowned, when Ontari began laughing lightly moments later, now completely absorbed in their discussion. Her brows knitted together in confusion at the older girl’s antics, she had never seen her act in such a way before and for some reason, she could not pinpoint at the moment, she felt something curl inside her stomach uncomfortably.

Marie readily let herself be distracted by the younger boy, who had thrown her the grimace before and continued doing so now. She barely thought anything about it, when the boy motioned her towards himself a few moments later. A quick glance at Ontari told her, that the older girl was not paying her any attention any longer at all, so she turned away from her and moved around the fire, joining the three children.

A tentative smile graced Marie’s features as she joined them and she barely brought out a shy “Hi” before the boy pulled a laugh from her, by another comical grimace.

“Wanna play?” he asked, dark eyes twinkling beneath his shaggy brown hair and a challenge was clear in his tone.

Marie tilted her head to the side slightly in question “Play what?” she asked, while her eyes darted around the other two children as well, another boy and a brunette girl, all three of them appeared visibly famished and dirty.

It turned out that the other children wanted to actually play hide and seek with her and Marie was immediately hooked with their idea. The talk around the fire was boring and she was getting tired, so the diversion by actually playing was more than welcome.

~ ~ ~

Lexa had been engaged in speaking with the village elder, reassuring the man that the village still had nothing to fear from her or her army. The man obviously found it hard to believe that a commander who was not from Azgeda was actually considering the wellbeing of the normal civilians of the clan.

It seemed that the village elder was convinced that a few of the villagers would even choose to side with the coalition’s army against their own queen, if given the chance. Lexa tried to persuade him that she appreciated the thought, but her army would not need the help of a few additional soldiers and the families who had suffered under the effects of the blockade for long weeks would now firstly need to recover.

When she finally managed to placate the village elder sufficiently, she joined Anya with the other generals, who were sharing a drink at the fire. Lexa frowned when she could not spot Marie with her former mentor, neither could she see Ontari at first glance.

Anya’s hand, guiding a mug with wine to her mouth, paused, when she noticed Lexa watching her tensely. Her gaze followed the commander’s and she understood quickly that Lexa was in fact searching for someone among the crowd. For a moment, she thought that the young leader was looking for Clarke, but her heart stopped for a beat, when she spotted Ontari, clearly joking around with one of the village boys. She had left the blonde girl near Ontari and had seen that the two had stood together at the fire moments later, but there was no sign of Marie anywhere now. She quickly handed over the mug to a second of one of the generals.

Lexa stepped closer to Anya, reaching out with one hand and grasping onto one of her elbows, hoping that the general indeed knew where their charge was. “Has Marie told you where she is?” she murmured quickly; green eyes boring into Anya’s brown ones intently. Her thoughts were already portraying scenarios of what might have happened and a sickening feeling settled into the pit of her stomach.

Anya shook her head “I left her with Ontari” she said in rising exasperation. She was sure that Marie would not just have retired to their tent alone, the girl still hated sleeping alone too much for that.

Lexa’s eyes narrowed and annoyance filtered into her tone “She is clearly not with her now. Where can she be?”. Her heart was beating quicker already in her chest, fearing the blonde child could have been abducted right in front of their eyes. It was obvious that neither of them had paid any real mind to Marie in the last hour and she was already regretting not insisting that Marie stayed beside her, where she could see the girl.

Anya’s lips thinned, as she did not have an answer to that question “I’ll check the tent” she offered, although she highly doubted the likelihood of finding Marie there.

Lexa nodded and after a moment of hesitation, she hastened behind her general. She had looked over the crowd around the fire at least ten times now and she would have surely spotted Marie by now, if she had been there.

Ryder and Gustus quickly fell into step behind the commander, following on the woman’s heel.

Lexa entered the tent with little hope of seeing Marie, so it came to no real surprise to her that Anya stood in the middle of the tent, desperation clinging to her features.

Anya shook her head in exasperation “She has not been here at all” she assessed. There was no sign that any of the furs had been touched at all, neither had anything else been moved.

Lexa nodded in mute agreement as a deep sense of fear settled into her mind. She could not stop her mind from conjuring images of Marie being delivered into Nia’s clutches once again. The child would surely not survive such torture again without breaking completely. If her worse fear became true and Marie truly had been abducted and was already on the way to the queen’s fortress, there was no scenario in which they would be able to catch up with her in time to save her.

Anya swallowed forcefully, seeing her own fears reflected on the young leader’s features “She has to be in the village somewhere” she said, trying to reassure Lexa as much as herself.

Lexa snorted slightly under her breath, a mixture of anger and grief flashed through her green eyes as she tried to agree “We will find her”. She could only pray in her mind that her words would prove to be true. She stepped out of the tent shortly, addressing Gustus and Ryder in hushed tones.

She could not risk for a panic to spread now, the atmosphere in the village was still too tense. After the failed assassination attempt on herself, it would be a disaster if someone from the village was still working with Nia and had lured Marie away from safety.

“I cannot be seen searching through the buildings of the village now” Lexa addressed her general, regret clear in her tone. She wanted to tear apart every single hut of the village singlehandedly until they had found a sign of Marie, but she was forced to remain here as to not raise suspicion, too many generals were present as well in the village. How should they trust her, if she failed to protect her second and that not even on the battle field?

Anya nodded, already turning on her heels, giving Lexa only a fleeting compassionate glance, before she hurried from the tent back to the fire. She stepped up to Ontari and without any kind of forewarning, clasped onto the girl’s shoulders and forcefully guided her from the fire, a little away from prying ears.

Ontari sobered quickly when she noticed how serious and tense the general appeared, something must have happened, although she had no idea on what exactly.

“When was the last time you saw Marie?” Anya hurriedly asked the nightblood girl, brown eyes staring down at her hard.

Ontari blinked in confusion for a moment as she raked her memories “Some time ago” she answered vaguely. She remembered that Marie had stood right next to her before the boy from the village had approached her, but she had not looked for her afterwards again. She felt worry settle in her mind, the general would not be asking for Marie, if the Trikru woman knew where the younger girl was, which clearly meant that the child was currently missing.

Anya cussed under her breath at the unhelpful answer. “We need to find her, now!” she proclaimed, tone urgent and brown eyes desperate.

Ontari nodded quickly, feeling guilty already that she had neglected to keep watch over the younger girl. If something had happened to Marie because of her inattentiveness, it would be her fault alone.

Anya steered Ontari in the direction of the nearest hut, not caring in the slightest that they would be invading the living quarters of the villagers, all that mattered in her mind was locating Marie as quickly as possible. She refused to accept the idea her mind was entertaining of Marie having been abducted again, there simply had to be another explanation.

Anya felt her slight hope dwindle down quickly after they had searched through five of the twelve large buildings and had not found any signs of Marie yet. She stopped Ontari before they exited, ordering the girl to search through another hut on her own, hoping to speed up the process in that way.

Ontari nodded fervently, feeling her own worry only increase with every passing moment. She tried to force her thoughts to remain focused, but she could vividly remember how Marie had been with Nia and she could not help herself but envision the blonde girl kneeling in front of the vile woman again.

In the sixth hut Anya encountered three children and she frowned when it looked as if they were searching for something as well. She stopped one of them, a lanky brunette boy, asking him for what they were searching. Her brows knitted together when he stuttered out that they had been playing hide and seek with the commander’s second.

Anya was torn between an irrational sense of anger and relief at the fact that Marie had probably not been abducted but was in fact hiding somewhere as a part of a childish game.

The next hut was empty as well and Anya felt her anger mount with every second, she was already thinking about just what it was she would be telling Marie about such carelessness. She would make sure herself that the girl would never even think about playing hide and seek ever again.

 

 

Chapter 223

Marie left from the fire in the company of the three other children. The boy who had motioned her over had volunteered to be the first one to search for the others. She had asked this time if there were any limitations on where they would hide, remembering getting lost in the tower while playing the same game with the nightblood children. She was told that they just did not leave the village, anything else was fine, the more creative, the better.

Marie nodded to the boy with a slight smile on her features.

The girl was complaining to him already that he needed to play fair this time and actually count to the number they had agreed on, so that they even would have a chance at hiding, before he simply chased after them.

Marie watched the exchange with a smirk, it was obvious that the three children knew each other for years and seemed good friends. She felt a flash of sadness wash over herself as fractions of the time she had spent with the nightblood children, Nymo especially, flashed up within her mind, reminding her sharply of the friends she had lost. When memories of years long past began to invade her mind as well, Marie forced herself to focus back on the present and she was startled slightly when she noticed that the other two children had already left to hide.

The boy stood opposite of her; his head titled slightly to the side “You’re not gonna hide?” he asked with a mixture of a tease and confusion in his tone.

Marie could not decide on whether to shake her head or nod and a weird in-between gesture was the result instead.

The boy laughed at her antics “I’ll give you another minute” he offered good-naturedly, closing his eyes again and even covering them with his hands.

“Thanks” Marie called over her shoulder, already moving away from him quickly. She had no idea why she had just spaced out like that, but she shook the thought about it from her mind, focusing on her task at hand instead. 

She looked around the village in a haste, she was not familiar with the outlay of the village, which clearly gave her a disadvantage in comparison to the other children she was playing with. They had all grown up here, so they naturally would know the best places to hide at.

She completely ruled out crossing back the path towards the fire, being relatively sure that hiding there would be way too obvious, her blonde hair was much too obvious for her to blend into the crowd without being noticed. For a moment, she contemplated hiding within the commander’s tent, technically it was part of the village currently, but she was fairly certain that hiding there would be unfair. She doubted that the boy searching for her, would even be granted entrance into the commander’s tent at all.

So, she focused her attention back to the other buildings of the village, she did not want to hide outside. Now that the sun had already set, it had become even colder and sitting in a place to hide without the possibility to move around, did not sound appealing at all.

The first building she entered did not seem to be actual living quarters but rather some sort of shared communal area. She could easily identify that there was some space reserved for cooking and large tables filled most of the room. She wondered why the warriors had not gathered inside here, the building appeared large enough to hold them all and it would have been much warmer than standing outside by the fire. The large room did not offer much in places to hide for, so she hurried out of it again, entering the next building quickly.

This building obviously was used as living quarters. Marie remained frozen in the entrance for long moments, letting her gaze travel over the unfamiliar room. The building looked nothing at all like the living quarters she had come accustomed with in the tower and even less so compared to the confined small quarters on the Ark. It was obvious that the large wide room was used not just by one family and actually families and not just as practical living space for warriors.

A sound from outside of the building startled Marie and she teared her gaze away from a large bed, covered in what appeared to be a mixture of blankets, who could very well still come from the old world, with some pelts and furs. She thought to spot what could pass as a toy on the bed as well, so she guessed that the whole family was using it to sleep together.

She looked up towards the ceiling and noted that she could relatively easily climb up one of the posts in the room and try to hide on what appeared to have been the remains of a second floor of the building. Marie hoped that the boy would not think to look for her there, she had first considered trying to hide beneath one of the beds, or inside one of the large enough looking chests distributed around the room, but she guessed that to be too obvious hideouts and she would have searched that places first.

She distinctly remembered Ontari grumbling about the fact once that Anya was trying to teach her how to climb trees quickly to hide out of sight as well. The nightblood girl had been of the opinion that hiding from view that way was cowardice and facing an opponent outward was the better choice. After having been in Azgeda herself, she could even slightly understand that way of thinking. Ice Nation lands did not offer many trees to hide in and if there were trees, they mostly did not have any foliage to cover yourself behind, so that you would still be easy to spot. So, hiding above eyesight did simply not appear to be an obvious thought for Ontari. Marie hoped that it would be similar for the boy and offer her an advantage, nulling the fact that he was much more familiar with the village.

Marie stepped closer to the post and she smiled slightly when she spotted a few juts in it on the perfect heights to allow her to pull herself upwards easily enough. She would thank Anya later for all the lessons she had forced on herself concerning climbing and moving around trees. She felt much more comfortable in heights now and she was not feeling clumsy and unsure any more, as she climbed up the post.

She barely had managed to balance herself on the plane next to the post, which was surprisingly unsteady, before the door to the building was pushed open. Marie held her breath, when she spotted the boy entering the building and she smirked when he barely glanced up above his head at all, searching through what she would have considered the more obvious hiding places only, before he exited the building again.

Marie smiled in victory once the door fell shut behind him again, relatively convinced that he would not return too quickly to the building, probably searching through the other ones first. She hoped that she would be able to win the round of hide and seek that way.

As Marie let her eyes trail around herself in interest, taking in the walls of the building and that there appeared to be remnants of old drawing on them, she barely noticed how she became increasingly tired all of a sudden, when the excitement of having to hide in a short amount of time left her system.

Marie shook her head quickly, when her head fell forwards onto her chest, trying to shake off the sudden exhaustion. She could not sleep now, she told herself firmly.

She got onto her hands and knees, crawling slowly over the unsteady material of the floor, trying to keep on the parts where she guessed beams to be underneath as supports. She got more careful when she spotted some holes in the material in front of her, guessing that the second floor was probably not under use anymore, because it had become unstable over time.

Marie stopped crawling after a few moments, when she had the distinct feeling of liquid running from her nose, although it did not feel clogged. She frowned when she looked down and actually spotted a single drop of fresh blood beneath herself. She barely managed to crawl backwards, propping herself up against another steady post, before she fell unconscious all of a sudden.

~ ~ ~

Anya’s mounting anger gave place to a growing sense of panic, when she met with Ontari again. They had searched through all the buildings once now and had failed to locate Marie. There was a possibility that the children of the village might have innocently lured Marie from the fire to play with her, only for someone else taking up the perfect opportunity of the child being alone and unprotected to seize her.

Ontari pursed her lips when the general told her from her brief meeting with the small group of children. She had never been allowed to engage in such idiotic games like hide and seek, being forced into Nia’s tutelage from an age of barely being able to raise a sword upwards. She had not spotted any signs of a fight, but that did not have to mean anything, Marie could have been overpowered having been taken by surprise. She guessed that they would need to alert the scouts circling around the village, searching for tracks which had been made in the last hours, exiting the village briskly.

Anya ordered Ontari to search the buildings once again, choosing to quickly detour to the commander’s tent, being all too aware of how Lexa would probably be worrying sick over Marie as well at the moment. When she neared the commander’s tent, Anya could already make out Lexa standing in the entrance, expression drawn and tense and the flash of panic and disappointment at seeing her return empty-handed was all too obvious as well.

“No sign of her at all?” Lexa asked, voice strangled and green eyes desperate.

Anya shook her head in the negative with a heavy heart “She left the fire willingly. I met three of the villagers’ children, they apparently engaged in playing hide and seek together” she proclaimed, tone harsh and impatient.

“Hide and seek?” Lexa echoed with a raised brow, remembering all too well that they had already spent hours searching for Marie in the tower after the same game. But they had been fairly certain back then that Marie was still somewhere in the tower, whereas she now could basically be anywhere at this point.

Anya nodded in mute confirmation, brown eyes glittering angrily “If she left the village, I’ll wring her neck myself!”

Lexa narrowed her eyes at the older woman. She was fairly certain that Marie would not have been reckless enough to willingly leave the protected parameter of the village. The girl would be aware of how dangerous it would be for her personally to fall into the wrong hands in this place. Lexa knew that it was reasonable to assume that Nia would have given clear orders to bring anyone in front of her, who could potentially be used against herself. After what the girl had suffered through already at Nia’s hands, Lexa would stop at nothing at this point to protect and rescue her daughter.

She had already discarded the armour of her station and she only took up a warm coat again. It would be useless to try and obscure her identity, but she would not remain within their tent, simply waiting until Marie was found and she had to cling onto the believe that they would find the girl unharmed and well.

Anya frowned when Lexa dressed more warmly quickly in front of her. They had agreed beforehand that she needed to remain calm and not be seen as the commander searching for their second. “I will find her, Ontari is still searching for her, I will join back with her now” she tried to reassure her former second.

Lexa shook her head with a decisive expression “No, I will join the search now” she proclaimed in a hard tone.

Although Anya knew that tone well enough, she still tried to dissuade the young leader “Let Gustus and Ryder help in the search, but…”.

Lexa did not let her general finish and her green eyes almost burned in their intensity now “They already question the scouts circling around the village” she retorted firmly and determination filled her whole poise “I will not sit back and do nothing, while our daughter is potentially brought back to Nia”.

Anya swallowed hard once, while her emotions battled with her rationality. She nodded after a moment of heavy silence between them, she was in no position to order Lexa to stay put, being outranked by her former second and her heart could very well empathise with her need to help search for Marie and her refusal to accept that something might have already happened to the girl. Maybe they should consider not letting the girl leave their immediate sight ever again, they had been searching for her already too many times for comfort.

On their way out of the commander’s tent, they encountered Gustus. The burly guard was visibly worried as well, expression drawn and dark eyes nervous. “There are no tracks leading away from the village” he relayed their findings up to now quickly.

Lexa breathed out deeply, nodding her head curtly. Logically that must mean that Marie was still somewhere within the village. If she was hidden and kept somewhere against her will or if she was still hiding as a part of the game with the other children would be revealed once they actually succeeded in locating the child.

If Marie was kept somewhere in the village, they would need someone who knew all the potential hideouts of the village. They could try searching through the village one time more on their own, before she would alert the village elder. She did not want to cause a scene after the happenings of before, but she would not hesitate if they failed to find the girl in the next hour.

“Keep circling the village” she commanded sharply, just in case Marie was kept somewhere against her will and whoever had her was just waiting for the right moment to move the child.

Gustus nodded curtly and he almost tentatively offered “We will find her unharmed” before he turned on his heels and returned to the scouts, coordinating to change the rhythm of their rounds to a more frequent pace, slimming the chances of anyone slipping through their ranks undetected.

Lexa accompanied Anya to the first building she had searched through before, letting her eyes travel carefully over it, trying to look at it through the eyes of a child, looking specifically for small spaces which would allow a hideout for the small body of a child.

She felt her frustration and fear mount tenfold, when they could not locate Marie in the building. They had begun calling out for the girl as well, the atmosphere around the fire was still relatively lively and no attention had yet been drawn to the girl’s disappearance.

Anya did not seem to fare any better and anger had returned to her demeanour. Every moment of searching for the girl and not finding anything, was like a slow mental torture and her nerves felt stretched thin, close to snapping already.

Lexa took a deep breath, schooling her features into blankness again and forcing her mind to calm as well. They would achieve nothing by panicking and they still had enough places to search through. She led the general out of the building and into the next one in quick strides.

Anya grumbled “I have searched through that one already, as did Ontari” her jaw locked together tightly, before she ground out in frustration “She is not here!”

Lexa’s eyes narrowed at the general in mute warning, looking back around the building in silence instead.

“Marie!” Anya called out loudly “Your game is over, if you do not come out right this instant…!” she thundered.

Lexa rolled her eyes slightly at the older woman’s words. She only cared for locating the girl, she could understand that Marie had agreed to play with the other children. But they would need to have another word with the girl about disappearing out of sight without telling anyone.

~ ~ ~

Marie startled awake all of a sudden and her huddled mind needed long moments to understand just what had woken her so abruptly at all. She felt her heart beat quickly, when she recognized Anya’s voice calling out for her, the anger in it was almost palpable. She quickly hurried to stand up, intent on climbing down from the second floor. In her haste, she had forgotten how small the height of the roof was and her head connected painfully with the roof.

The impact of the collision with the hard wood of the roof was so great, that Marie fell to her knees, seeing stars in front of her eyes. A small startled cry escaped her lips, as the roof suddenly gave way under her and the sickening feeling of a fall settled into the pit of her stomach.

Anya whirled around at the cry, identifying Marie’s sounds of distress easily and she was standing close enough to catch and gentle Marie’s fall only by pure luck. The anger she had felt coursing through her mind only moments ago, dwindled down instantly, when she took a look at Marie.

The girl was pale and blood ran from a slight gash on her forehead, her grey eyes were wide, frightened and she was clearly in shock. She breathed out a deep involuntary sigh of relief of feeling the girl’s weight in her arms. She cursed herself a fool in her mind, for not having though to look for places on to which the child could have climbed to hide. She had after all repeatedly tried to point out the importance of such hideouts to Marie during their training. Anya was undecided yet if she should compliment the girl for actually having listened well during their training or simply being angry at her for frightening the both of them like that.

Marie blinked at Anya in speechlessness, she was glad that the woman was holding her, the room was spinning around herself slightly and she was sure that she would fall if she was forced to stand on her own right now.

Lexa stepped closer to Anya and Marie quickly, feeling the tension drain from her chest immediately at seeing the girl alive. Her green eyes worriedly took in the bleeding gash on the girl’s forehead and the unhealthy paleness of her complexion. She gently inspected the gash, fortunately it did not appear to be very deep, but a bump was already swelling on the girl’s forehead, she must have hit her head hard to cause that. She immediately remembered Abby’s cautious words to make sure that the girl would not hit her head again, saying that the bone structure of her head would remain weaker and more fragile.

“Do you know where you are, Marie?” she questioned the girl in a soft tone, waiting until her grey unfocused eyes slowly turned towards her.

Marie nodded her head in mute agreement, groaning when the movement only made her feel sick. She tried to turn from Anya slightly, when she felt the pressing need to vomit.

Anya breathed out a sigh, trying to balance the girl carefully in her arms and she tried to keep her tone soothing “It is alright, little star, we have got you”. Her eyes connected with Lexa’s minutely and her deep relief was mirrored in them vividly. Her anger resurfaced briefly at the worry through which the girl had put them during the last hours, she opened her mouth to reprimand the girl.

Lexa quickly shook her head, silencing her general before the woman could say anything else, the glint in her brown eyes had easily given away her intentions. There would be time to speak with the girl of the dangers of what she had done later, once the girl was feeling better again. “Let us move back to our tent” she said instead, tone soft but firm “We will speak about this in the morning”.

 

 

Chapter 224

Marie nodded with another pained grown, borrowing herself slightly against Anya’s chest, pressing her lips together firmly, once Anya began to move and the jostlement only made her feel sicker again.

On their way back Lexa instructed Ryder to signal Gustus, Ontari and the scouts still searching for Marie, that the child had been found and to send for Alira quickly. She also proclaimed that they would be retiring for the night, taking care of Marie was her first priority at the moment and the girl clearly needed to rest for the night.

Anya tightened her arms around Marie, trying to keep her as steady and immobile as possible against her chest, sensing that the girl was probably close to retching again and she did not particularly care for being covered in vomit. She would not say anything about it though, the girl was obviously suffering from a head injury and was not doing so purposefully after all, she was only deeply relieved that the child was still alive.

Lexa walked so close to Anya, that she could put a hand lightly on one of Marie’s shoulders, feeling the inexplicable need to have a physical connection to the child for the moment. She did not particularly care for the fact that someone might observe her in such an improper situation. Marie was officially her second after all and she was entitled to worry for her wellbeing, it was no one else’s business in her mind that the connection between Marie and her was much deeper than she was allowed to broadcast openly.

Marie had difficulties to grasp what had just happened in the last moments. The last clear memory she had in her mind had been of climbing up the post in the building to hide out of view and feeling victorious when the boy left the large room again, after having failed to locate her in the obvious hideouts. She fuzzily remembered looking around the second floor of the building, her interest quipped by the drawings on the wall. But she frowned, when she remembered that she must have bled from her nose again and she could not remember clearly what had happened afterwards. Her head pounded painfully and trying to make sense of her thoughts was only adding to her headache. So, she let herself be slightly soothed by Anya’s calming warmth and scent almost encasing her, feeling the woman’s strong arms keeping her secure and she distinctly felt Lexa’s gentle touch on her shoulder as well.

Marie distinctly wondered just how much time might have passed between her falling unconscious, or she at least assumed that she had, and Anya and Lexa beginning to search for her. A deep sense of guilt settled into her mind at her train of thoughts, she had not intended to make the both of them worry at all and she could only pray that she had not involuntarily caused a scene in front of the other warriors. She was trying so hard to appear to be the perfect second for the commander and her general, she would have just failed again at it, if she indeed had caused a scene.

Marie felt tears clouding her eyes at her own thoughts, hoping almost desperately that her disappearance had not been noticed by anyone beside Lexa and Anya. It was hard enough to know that the two women had had to search for her to begin with.

“I am sorry…” she brought out somehow, almost unintelligible, as the first tear ran down her cheek against her will. Her breathing only got erratic and a real sob escaped past her lips at the fact that she was crying and by thus yet again showing another sign of weakness out in the open like that.

“Hush, Marie” Lexa addressed the girl in a gentle tone, squeezing her shoulder slightly. It was obvious that the girl was already working herself into a state and she feared that the child was confused as well due to the injury to her head. She could distinctly make out blood around the child’s nose as well, so Lexa guessed that Marie must have hit her head pretty hard before falling through the unstable floor. They truly had been lucky to have been in the very building at all at the time, Marie would have probably only injured herself, possibly even gravely, if Anya had not stood in that exact same place to catch the girl like that.

At their entrance into the commander’s tent Anya immediately carried Marie over to the huge bed, placing the girl down gently on it. She had to pry Marie’s fingers from her coat with gentle force, the girl seemed disoriented and confused, still crying pitifully as well.

“Everything is going to be alright, little star” Lexa said, kneeling down at the girl’s hand and gently swiping blonde strands of hair from her forehead, where they had begun to clung to the blood still pouring sluggishly from the bleeding gash.

Anya backed off from the bed, when Alira entered the commander’s tent, accompanied by one of the healers personally allocated only the commander’s personal welfare. She hovered behind the bed, while Lexa only moved her position slightly, holding on to one of Marie’s hands the whole time, while the healer tended to the injured girl.

Marie groaned in obvious pain when the man cleaned out the gash on her forehead, trying to twist away from his hands, only to have the whole world begin to spin in front of her eyes again. “I am dizzy…” she whined slightly in protest and her words were slurred noticeably.

Lexa squeezed the girl’s hand in mute support, trying to reassure the child again that everything would be fine again later.

Fortunately, it did not take long for the healer to tend to Marie and he backed off from the bed only a few moments later, instructing Alira on which tea to prepare for the girl to help with her apparent dizziness. He would have advised on letting the girl stay on bedrest for a day or two, but with the group of warriors being on the way to catch up with the rest of the army, they could really only hope to alleviate some of the girl’s symptoms for the moment.

Alira immediately prepared the asked for tea, making sure to add an extra portion of honey for the girl, knowing all too well how unwilling Marie was to drink their bitter teas without them being sweetened overly much for her sake.

Lexa took over cleaning away the blood from the girl’s face gently, dismissing the healer with a light glare when he dared to protest her intentions. She thought that Marie would surely like it better to be taken care off by one of them and not someone who was a stranger to her. Now that the child had been assessed to medically, they could take over the rest there was to do on their own. The child would surely settle much easier and quicker, if Anya and she took care of her.

Anya waited behind Alira, until the handmaid had finished the preparation for the tea, dismissing the woman as well for now.

Marie visibly grimaced when she went over to the bed, sitting down on the edge and Lexa propped the girl up, slipping onto the bed beside the child to keep her upright with her own body. Marie let her head fall back slightly against Lexa’s chest, closing her eyes for a moment, hoping that the annoying spinning sensation would fade again from her senses.

“Marie, open your eyes and drink the tea” Anya addressed the girl and annoyance filtered back into her tone quickly, when the child only ignored her words.

“Marie” Lexa said in a gentle tone, letting a hand caress over the girl’s back in a gentle gesture “Open your eyes for us, please”.

“It only spins then…” Marie retorted, borrowing herself a little firmer against Lexa’s body, making herself slightly more comfortable on the bed.

Lexa’s gaze softened considerably and her tone was light and caring as she reasoned “The tea will help with that, but you have to drink it first, Marie”.

Marie let out a mixture between a groan and a pitiful whine, forcing her eyes open a short moment later again. “It still spins…” she complained, clutching on to Lexa with a little force, hoping that the feeling of her steady body behind herself would also ground her own senses somehow.

Anya brought the mug with the tea towards Marie’s mouth slowly, offering it to her directly. She had already blown on the surface of the hot brew, so the temperature should be fine to drink from it immediately.

Marie obediently took a few sips from the mug, being relieved that the tea sounded as sweet as it did. It took her long moments to drain the complete tea and she was internally grateful for Anya for not trying to force her to hurry along at all.

Lexa and Anya waited patiently for Marie to drink the tea and Lexa kept on gently caressing the child’s back in a soothing motion, allowing the girl to draw as much comfort from her presence as possible.

Marie still sniffled slightly, when Anya took the now empty mug away. Unfortunately, her head still pounded with a deep ache and if she believed her eyes, Anya was moving around weirdly, although she theoretically knew that the woman was sitting beside her immobile instead.

“I had not meant to get lost” Marie sniffed out, looking at Anya with wide grey eyes, still swimming in tears. Although Anya seemed to have calmed, she could distinctly identify a lingering anger in her brown eyes.

Lexa bandied a look with Anya, hoping to convey to her former mentor to go easy on the girl now. Marie was in no real constitution to be scolded right now and actually learn anything from it. The girl was obviously still in pain and feeling physically sick, tomorrow would be early enough to have a serious word with the child.

Anya sighed under her breath, firmly putting a stopper onto her minutely flaring up anger. Her reasonable side could fathom why Lexa did not wish her to scold Marie at the current moment. “We know” she agreed with the girl, trying to keep her tone calm and kind.

Marie sniffed slightly, trying to get her fuzzy gaze to truly focus onto Anya’s features in front of her. She sobbed a little more forcefully, when Anya’s features remained somehow blurry in front of her.

“Sshhh” Lexa tried to sooth the girl, feeling that she was only getting agitated again and not calming down at all “You can explain to us in the morning, what has happened” she assured the girl softly.

Anya took the girl’s hands into her own, gently letting her finger glide over the girl’s knuckles. “You are safe now, little star, that is all that matters for the moment” she said honestly.

Lexa glanced up from Marie curtly, when she heard the tent flaps being opened and falling close again only a moment later. The harsh comment burning on the tip of her tongue died, when she realized that it had only been Ontari entering the tent without allowance.

Ontari had been told by Ryder only a few moments ago that Marie had been found and that a healer was taking care of the younger girl now. She had felt relieved unbelievably at the news, but the fact that a healer was required did not let all of her worries die just yet. She breathed out a deep breath, which had been held in far too long, feeling the tension drain from her frame immediately at seeing Marie alive. It was obvious that the younger girl had somehow suffered a head injury, but Ontari wondered just how she had managed that, nowhere had been any signs of a physical fight.

“What has happened?” Ontari asked almost hesitantly, as she stepped closer to the bed. She felt that Marie would not have gotten hurt at all, if she had just kept a closer eye on the younger girl at the fire before.

Lexa shook her head at the nightblood girl, when Marie tried to sit up a little straighter with the clear attempt to justify herself now “Hush, Marie” she silenced the blonde girl in a gentle firm tone, pulling her back against herself. She lowly hummed the melody of the old lullaby under her breath, knowing that this was one of the only things which usually never failed at calming down Marie, if all else failed.

Marie blinked a few times, against her will she felt calmness settled in her mind just a few moments later already. She wanted to explain to Lexa and Anya that she had not wanted to cause them to worry, how she had simply wanted to play with the other children, but her head was also still pounding painfully in sync with her heartbeat and Lexa’s low voice soon lulled her to sleep.

Lexa kept on holding Marie for way longer than it had taken the girl to drift off, her body had noticeably relaxed within her arms, but she wanted to be absolutely certain that the girl would not wake immediately, once she moved.

Anya stood from the bed as soon as Marie’s breathing had evened out, Ontari was still hovering in her periphery uncertainly.

“I deeply regret, that I have not kept closer watch over her…” the nightblood girl excused her failure immediately, once the general stood facing her and her dark eyes were honest and filled with clear compassion for the younger girl.

Anya shook her head, taking a deep breath. She would not blame Ontari for not watching over Marie, she had failed to order the nightblood girl to do so in the first place and neither she, nor Lexa had payed any more attention to Marie. So, it was very well all of their faults combined, just as Marie’s fault for not alerting someone to her plans.

It had turned very late into the night by now and they only a few hours of sleep available now, before they were required to rise again. “I do not place the blame with you, Ontari” she assured her older charge with conviction in her tone “It is late already, rest for the night. The sun will rise in only a few short hours”.

Ontari nodded with the hint of a tight-lipped smile. An additional bedroll had already been provided for her, so without further ado, she began stripping out of her own armour.  Now that she was able to move her previously injured shoulder again, she did not need any assistance any longer. Her shoulder hurt slightly, but the ache was bearable and it would be completely gone in a few days.

Anya watched for a moment how Ontari got ready to retire, making sure that the girl truly did not need any help from her again. She turned back towards the big bed as well, already shrugging out of her own armour.

Lexa carefully manoeuvred out behind Marie, placing the girl down on the mattress softly, without waking her up. She quickly disrobed as well, opting to sleep in her trousers and her undershirt, leaving the braids in place as well for now.

They got ready to join Marie in silence and Lexa remained standing for a moment in front of the bed, mutely observing the sleeping child. When she felt Anya’s presence beside herself, she looked over at her former mentor. It was obvious that Anya still held onto her anger at Marie’s irresponsible actions. “She is alive, that is all that matters right now” Lexa repeated in a low tone.

Anya snorted slightly under her breath and crossed her arms over her chest “These moments will only keep on repeating themselves if she does not learn to identify the danger of certain situations. She is too trusting still. She has probably not even realized how danger leaving the fire like that was”.

Lexa nodded with a deep sigh; she could only agree with her general’s assessment. The girl’s trust in adult strangers had noticeably decreased, but she had obviously not thought about the fact that the children of the village could have been working with someone loyal to Nia as well. “She will learn” Lexa assured the older woman with conviction in her tone. The both of them would certainly make sure of that.

~ ~ ~

The night had passed peacefully for all of them. Lexa and Anya both had lain close to Marie, needing to make sure that the child was indeed with them and breathing still. Whatever had been in the tea from the healer, had worked excellently in knocking out the child for the complete night.

Because Marie had healed both of them only a few hours ago, neither Lexa nor Anya had felt particularly tired. Lexa had spent most of the night in deep mediation, only napping scarcely. While Anya had kept watch over both of them and she had continually lightly caressed over one of the girl’s arms, only drifting off shortly before the sun began to ascend.

Marie woke up with a slight sigh, which quickly turned into a groan. She had hoped that her headache would have vanished over the course of the night, but she immediately had to realize that this wish had not been granted. Her head pounded still and opening her eyes felt much more strenuous than it should have.

Lexa was awoken fully immediately by the slight pained sound coming from Marie and she turned onto her side, facing the girl fully. Her eyes worriedly flitted over the girl’s face, being almost afraid for the flash of a second to find the girl’s blonde hair tinted red once again by blood. Fortunately, she could not spot any additional blood on the girl’s hair or face, but she was obviously still suffering from a strong headache. The bump which had swollen on her forehead did appear rather big.

“What happened?” Marie asked against the pounding her head, once she looked at Lexa and found the commander awake again.

“You don’t remember?” Lexa retorted; voice pitched an octave higher. The girl had not seemed to suffer from memory loss last night.

Marie frowned for a moment, waiting for her mind to get fully awake as well, but it remained a little muddled still. She shook her head slightly, trying to clear it further, but the motion only increased the pain radiating through her skull. She gingerly touched the bump on her forehead “Ouch…” she let out involuntarily, clenching her teeth together against the intensified pain.

“I will prepare another tea” Lexa said, swallowing forcefully. Her heart raced within her chest almost painfully, she could not imagine how dealing with the girl during a war with another bout of memory loss would turn out.

“Mommy…” Marie said, trying slowly to sit up. Her memories of the last evening had returned to her slowly and with it the deep sense of guilt.

Lexa whirled around quickly at the girl’s single word, feeling the weight lift from her heart immediately. If the girl remembered their deep connection, she could not have forgotten much, if anything at all. It was possible that her head injury just impaired the speed of her thoughts. She stepped closer to the bed again, sitting down beside the girl. “It is alright, Marie” she assured the girl in a gentle tone, caressing her cheek softly “Your pain will fade in a few days”.

Marie nodded slightly, but her expression was still deeply mirrored by guilt “I am sorry…” she tried to apologize as tears already gathered in her eyes.

“Ssshhh, little start” Lexa hushed the girl, wiping under her grey eyes gently “There is no need to cry”.

Marie sniffed slightly, trying to stop herself from fully bursting into tears. Lexa did not appear to be angry with her outwardly, if anything the woman was looking at her with the hint of worry in her green eyes. “I had not wanted to worry any of you” she tried to justify herself again, remembering now that she had not been able to do so last night.

Before Lexa could say anything to it, Anya stretched slightly, sitting up as well. The general’s brown eyes immediately searched for Marie and relieved was palpable in them at spotting the girl sitting upright.

The clear guilt in Marie’s grey eyes, stopped Anya’s already prepared scolding from being articulated out loud.

“I am sorry, Mama, for worrying you” Marie said honestly, her lower lip trembled suspiciously and Lexa put a hand onto the girl’s lower back reassuringly.

Anya sighed under her breath “Don’t you dare ever playing hide and seek again, without telling us beforehand” she proclaimed in a strict tone. The love and relief gentling her brown eyes belied her firm tone somewhat.

Marie winced slightly, before she nodded her head fervently, groaning immediately at the intensifying pain in her head.

Anya reached out quickly, steadying the girl’s head “Stop moving around” she admonished the girl in a low tone, suspecting that too loud sounds would surely only add to her pain as well.

Marie gave her the pitiful resemblance of a smile, she gnawed at her lower lip for long moments, before she finally breathed out the question almost burning on her tongue “Did I cause another scene?” her shoulders already dropped in disappointment at herself.

Anya shook her head in denial “You have not, no” she reassured the girl vehemently. They had been fortunate enough that the other generals and warriors had not noticed that anything had been amiss at all.

Marie breathed out a sigh of relieve “I am sorry” she repeated and she twisted around slightly, wanting to be able to look at Lexa “I had not wanted to disapp…”

Lexa hushed the girl before she could finish her apology “You have not disappointed me, Marie” she reassured her “You could not”.

Marie nodded, although her expression looked less than convinced. She would try even harder from now on. She frowned slightly once Lexa’s last words registered in her mind. “Why not?” she questioned as her brows knitted together “I have not behaved like the commander’s sec…”.

Lexa interrupted the girl again, as she let an arm snake around the girl’s body and she gently swiped a blonde lock behind the child’s ear “You will never be only the commander’s second to me, little star, you are our daughter now, Marie. You have done something which has placed yourself in grave danger” she said and her green eyes stared intently at the young girl “You will learn with time to identify these situations and use your head before heading into danger without further thought. But we love you deeply, you cannot disappoint us by making a wrong decision”.

Marie’s smile turned watery all of a sudden and she sobbed under her breath, overwhelmed with the whirlwind of feelings coursing through her mind currently. She looked between Anya and Lexa with wide eyes, trying to swallow down the lump in her throat. “Love you…” she whispered to the both of them likewise, she was torn between who to envelope first and with a slight smile Anya slipped closer to the girl, so that Lexa and she both could hug the girl simultaneously.

“Love you, too, little star” Anya said, voice thick with emotion, bending down and pressing a kiss to the girl’s hairline, careful not to come close to the bump on her forehead, while Lexa tightened her arm around Marie mutely.

 

 

Chapter 225

Although Marie’s obvious discomfort worried Lexa and Anya likewise, they were both aware that they needed to leave the village and continue their way to catch up with the rest of the army.

Lexa had tried to calculate as much reserves for the army as possible, taking into account that there was no guarantee that the war would be over only a few days, but she knew that already causing a delay now, way before they had even reached Nia’s fortress was not wise at all and she could only hope that Marie was fit enough to ride. It would probably be advisable to have the girl share a horse with Anya, in case she lost consciousness, falling again would surely only worsen her condition.

They had stayed in their embrace for long silent moments, until Anya heard sounds of Ontari waking up as well and the general separated from Lexa and Marie, backing off from the bed completely. She strode to the entrance of the tent, quickly ordering for a light breakfast to be brought to the commander’s tent for all of them.

Ontari grimaced visibly, once she sat up fully under her furs. The day spent in the saddle had put more strain on her body, than she had thought possible and she painfully felt all the days now that she had been forced from training because of her injury. Her shoulder actually felt slightly better already and all sensations of pain would fade soon completely.

Lexa tightened her arms around Marie slightly, caressing over her soft hair for a moment, before she slowly loosened their embrace as well. She smiled down at the girl with a gentle expression, placing a kiss onto her forehead, careful not to touch the visible bump at all.

The corners of Marie’s lips tilted up in a bright smile and her grey eyes shone up at Lexa. She still acutely felt the strong pounding pain radiate through her head, but she was only concentrating on Lexa for the moment. “Can I have the tea now?” she asked after another moment and a slight whine filtered into her tone.

Lexa smirked softly at her “Of course” she answered, squeezing the child’s shoulders once, before she stood up from the bed. The preparation of the tea did not take long at all and only moments later, Lexa stepped back towards the bed, offering the streaming cup to Marie with the orders to wait for a few minutes before she actually drank it.

Marie settled back against the pillows slightly, turning the cup between her fingers. She watched mutely how Anya redressed into her armour, checked her hair quickly and applied some war paint to her features.

Lexa began readying herself for the long day ahead as well. She had barely finished putting on her shoulder pauldron and red sash, before Alira delivered breakfast.

Ontari visibly needed a bit longer to dress this morning, her movements were stiff and slow and it was obvious that it was causing her some discomfort. Internally she was grumbling over the fact how easily Marie had gotten off, the commander and general seemed to think that Marie’s head wound was enough punishment already for her actions the night before. She knew all too well that she would have been black and blue for days if she had pulled such a stunt with Nia, not that she would have ever seriously considered something as foolish and childish anyway. She highly doubted that Marie would think twice about making the same decision again if presented with a similar choice in the future. She was not convinced that the younger girl was even aware of the grave danger she had so foolishly put herself into. She did not doubt that Marie had a heavy conscience for worrying the two Trikru women, her remorse over it had been honest enough to believe it. It bugged her somehow that Marie seemed additionally only worried about having caused a scene in front of the other warriors, reflecting badly onto her position as the commander’s second. If she had to watch over Marie again, the younger girl would not slip away ever again, she would make sure of that.

Lexa and Anya began eating breakfast quickly, they still had to meet with the other generals and Lexa had to speak with the village elder again before they could leave the village.

Marie’s lips visibly turned downwards when the two women proclaimed the need to leave for some time, but Ontari readily agreed to stay behind and watch over Marie. The younger girl had just finished her tea and was waiting for it to take effect, before she could even contemplate eating something herself.

Marie frowned slightly when she noticed Ontari’s visibly darkened mood. After a few tense moments of silence, she asked tentatively “Are you alright?” grey eyes compassionate and innocent, worried slightly that something might be wrong with the older girl.

Ontari narrowed her dark eyes at Marie. To her it seemed as if the blonde girl had not even contemplated the possibility that she could have worried for her as well and for some reason this fact angered her immensely at the moment.

Marie’s frown deepened at the nightblood girl’s darkened expression. “Are you angry with me?” she asked after another few moments of silence, the tension so thick that it could have been cut with a knife.

“Of course" Ontari ground out her confirmation through clenched teeth.

Marie’s brows knitted together in confusion and she tilted her head to the side slightly “Why?” she breathed out lowly. It was obvious that Ontari was really angry and the older girl had not looked at her with such coldness in her dark eyes for a really long time.

Ontari huffed in frustration “Can’t you think of a single reason?!” she exclaimed in mounting exasperation.

Marie blinked at the older girl. She was confused at the moment. It was obvious that she had somehow hurt the older girl, but she could not think of a reason for that right now. All she knew was that she had angered one of her only friends and she did not like the heavy feeling that caused at all. Before she knew it, tears misted over her eyes. “I am sorry...” she offered remorsefully as her breathing began to get uneven.

Ontari huffed again, feeling a definite flash of guilt at bringing the younger girl close to tears. She closed her eyes tightly for a moment, breathing out a deep breath, trying to calm her mind. If Lexa and Anya had not thought it necessary to really reprimand the child, it probably was not her place to do so anyway. She still could not ban her frustration completely from her thoughts. After another moment of Marie visibly shrinking on the bed, Ontari sat down on the edge of the bed. “You left the fire while standing next to me, without saying a single word" she tried to explain herself in a carefully measured tone.

Marie frowned slightly, remembering clearly that the older girl had not payed her any attention at all. “You were busy" she defended herself with a little pout on her lips “I had just wanted to play with them" she added after a second.

Ontari rolled her eyes at the younger girl “Have you considered for a single second just how dangerous leaving the fire unattended was? No one would have even known to look for you if you had been abducted again!” her voice rose with each word.

Marie winced visibly at the raised voice “But I just played with the other children...”

Ontari narrowed her eyes again “Just because they were children does not mean that they could not have worked for Nia. Or someone else might have just waited for you to be on your own for a moment" her gaze was dark and angry as she stared the younger girl down.

Marie shrank further into the furs, as Ontari continued to rant.

“You have not even thought of the possibility of something happening to you. You left the protection willingly, without thought. You don’t have any idea on how I would have felt if something ....” Ontari accused the younger girl.

Lexa returned to exactly that scene, hearing Ontari’s last words only and seeing Marie already crying pathetically on the bed. She had to agree with the nightblood girl to a certain degree. Marie needed to learn to identify the danger of certain situations, her remorse would not help anyone if she was severely injured or worse yet even killed because making a foolish decision. But she also knew that being too hard on the child now, would not yield to anything. Marie needed to know that it was alright to make an error, but that she simply had to try to think ahead of the consequences of her decisions. She felt a definite surge of irritation towards Ontari for upsetting Marie in such a fashion, but Anya had only been less hard on their daughter because of her own insistence.

“That is enough for now, Ontari" she interrupted the nightblood girl’s rant, voice tinted with a little force.

Ontario looked over to the commander quickly, not having realized that they were not alone in the tent any longer. Surprise flashed through her dark eyes, followed by a flash of reluctance to let the matter drop and finally resignation settled onto her features.

Lexa inclined her head towards the younger nightblood girl, mutely signalling her that she was not taking offence from what she had heard. It might even be possible that Marie would be more inclined to listen to reason from a friend than who she considered her mother figures. She moved over to the bed in fast strides, Ontari hastily stood up, making room for her.

“Are you angry with me as well?” Marie asked in a pitiful tone and her lower lip trembled visibly again.

Ontari sighed under her breath at the younger girl’s overly dramatic antics.

Lexa shook her head with a slightly forced smile, as she sat down on the edge of the bed, hand reaching out to lightly trace the side of the child’s face. “We are not angry with you, Marie, but Ontari is correct in her assessment that you put yourself willingly into unnecessary danger. We cannot protect you from harm when you continue making foolish decisions like that.”

Marie pouted lightly at Lexa’s words, looking up at her with an apologetic expression in her wide grey eyes, but she immediately leaned into the light caress.

“You will learn with time to use your head first" Lexa reassured the child “You have frightened all of us last night, but you are alive. Unfortunately, I cannot stop the march for you, Marie”.

Marie nodded in acceptance; she had not expected such anyway. She only hoped that she would not immediately get dizzy again by the swaying motion of the horse moving under her once they resumed their journey. “I am sorry...” she offered sincerely, likewise directed to both of them.

Lexa gave the child a slight smile “Have you eaten yet?” she asked when her eyes fell on the seemingly untouched plate sitting next to Marie on the furs.

Marie shook her head in denial mutely, she was not feeling particularly hungry at all, being a little worried that she would not be able to stomach anything at all. Her whole body felt slightly off still.

Lexa gave the girl a pointed look, shoving the plate closer to her “Eat something” she ordered in a firm tone “We will leave soon and we will not reach the next stop until late in the day, possibly only after sunset.”

Marie nodded with a slight grimace, inspecting the plate more closely and searching for something which picked her interest, half-heartedly she began to nibble on a piece of cheese.

“Eat, Marie” Lexa repeated, glancing pointedly at the girl, before she looked over at Ontari. It was obvious that the nightblood girl felt uncomfortable in the whole situation by the tenseness lingering in her poise. “You can watch over her until the tent will be dismantled” she directly addressed Ontari.

Ontari nodded in mute agreement “She will not get lost again under my watch” she proclaimed with determination.

“I would assume nothing less” Lexa agreed, amusement shortly dancing through her green eyes. It deepened to a slight smirk, when Mari scowled darkly at the both of them.

~ ~ ~

The time until the tent was to be dismantled passed mostly in silence after Lexa had left again. Marie was still scowling slightly and obviously not in a chatty mood for now, eating her breakfast mutely.

When the guards entered the commander’s tent, beginning to pack everything up, Ontari quickly assisted Marie in dressing herself for the day. It was obvious that the blonde girl was experiencing some feelings of imbalance and Ontari hovered close to her the whole time, intent on catching her before she could fall down completely.

Marie did not argue at all, when Anya stepped closer to her, proclaiming that she would be riding with her for now. Internally, she was relieved, the world still seemed a little woozy around the edges of her vision. She felt her stomach clench and churn strongly, when Anya boosted her up onto her hazelnut steed in one quick motion and she gladly let herself relax backwards against Anya’s steady frame.

“Sleep, if you wish” Anya offered in a low tone, tightening her arm around the girl’s midriff, pulling her firmer against her own body. They had only begun their journey for the day and to her it appeared as if Marie already had problems with keeping her head up, as it continued to lightly fall forward.

Marie nodded mutely, wiggling a little, until she had felt a really comfortable position. It had gotten noticeably colder in comparison to the temperature that she remembered from Polis and Anya’s warmth was more than welcome now.

Lexa kept an eye on the child from the corner of her eyes, riding directly next to Anya, Gustus on her own other side and Ontari riding on Anya’s other side. She was really hoping almost desperately that Marie would hold on during their journey. Internally, Lexa was raking her mind for a valid reason to halt the march of the group for a day or two, if Marie’s condition would decrease suddenly. But she was unsuccessful with coming up with something reasonable and the rational part of her mind screamed loudly that she was a fool for even contemplating such things.

As the group had left the village it had been rather obvious to all grounders that the Skykru travelling with them were already feeling the effects of having to ride for hours without pause, being mostly unfamiliar with the strain it put on the body. Lexa wondered if the generations their ancestors had spent in space, were now hindering them too truly adapt to their way of living and a small sliver of doubt settled in her mind that it was even possible for them to adapt at all.

The Skykru ambassador Monty had given her a report a few days before leaving Polis on the progress of Arkadia. It seemed that a few of the younger members of Skykru were truly beginning to mingle with Trikru now. Apparently, Octavia and Lincoln bonding to each other had only been the beginning and the report had stated clearly that already fifteen of the younger generation of Skykru had already moved from Arkadia to TonDC mostly. The higher portion of them seemed to have left their people for love, choosing to move to Trikru to be together with their love interest. Others had found firsts to teach them in the ways of the warriors or even apprenticed to other professions. The report had been worded by Abby and her dislike of the development was more than apparent between the lines. Lexa was well aware of the budding romance between Kitara and Monty as well.

She would not prohibit people from Trikru or even other clans to choose to live with Skykru, but she regarded the chances of such an event happening still rather low. Lexa wondered if there might come a time where Skykru would more or less merge together with Trikru, the two clans were already beginning to intermingle. She had heard from Indra that Octavia was not part of the army marching towards the north, simply because the young Skykru woman was expecting a child with Lincoln. It would be the first child born between both clans and its birth would surely be remembered.

Skykru were so small in their numbers that Lexa did not think it necessary for the clan to truly remain an actual clan. But she highly doubted that Skykru would think positive of such a suggestion. She would need to grant them more time to try to establish a place for them in the world.

As the commander Lexa was well aware of just how distrustful the other clans were of the technologies Skykru still could wield and by thus the knowledge the small alien clan had, which had been lost to them a long time ago now. She was convinced that the clans would be open to use such technologies as well if the clans could be convinced of their superiority. But such thoughts could still be considered after the war.

~ ~ ~

Marie had dozed off quickly into their journey for the day and woke up an undefined time later, head pounding and feeling distinctly disoriented. She squirmed in Anya’s arms, confused what was wound around her at all, as her woozy mind was unable to grasp what was going on.

“Sshhh” Anya hushed into the girl’s ear, tightening her arm further around the girl’s body “You are safe” she reassured the child in a soft tone.

Marie blinked a few times, before she tilted her head upwards, glancing at Anya for long moments in silence, before she asked “How long have I slept?” a light frown settled onto her features. The sky was weirdly grey and she could not spot the direct sun above them.

“It is long past midday already” Anya easily answered. They had encountered distinct tracks of the army ahead of them around an hour ago and although the tracks had not been very fresh, as most of the warriors of the army were travelling by foot, she estimated that they definitely would catch up with them before nightfall.

Marie’s frown deepened and she found it hard to believe that she should have slept away most of the day already. From the weird feeling in her body she would have assumed that she had barely slept for more than an hour at most.

Her frown disappeared all of a sudden and her grey eyes widened when she spotted something in the air “Are that snowflakes?” she asked as clear excitement filtered into her tone.

Anya snorted under her breath at the girl’s rising enthusiasm, she had thought that Marie would have been cured of her fascination for snow by now. “Obviously” she commented drily, brown eyes staring ahead of them. To her, snow meant that it would get even colder now, making travelling even more strenuous and dangerous, but at the same time also that they were slowly nearing their destination. Anya felt a dark thirst for revenge settle into her mind at the thought of finally coming face to face with Nia again. Absentmindedly Anya enveloped her daughter even firmer, she would not let Nia touch a single hair on Marie’s head ever again and she would take great personal pleasure in taking vengeance for the child. Anya almost hoped that she would get presented with the opportunity to face Nia alone, she was positive that she would not even be needing a weapon to tear the vile woman apart, her pure hate and encompassing anger at what the woman had done to the girl, would be enough.

Anya minutely glanced over at her previous second on her left and although Lexa’s features were blank and calm, she was sure that the commander would readily agree to her train of thoughts. Lexa had even more personal reason to want to finally see Nia die and the brunette would have waited long years for her revenge on Costia’s behalf. She also did not doubt for a second that Ontari would willingly help in taking out her previous tormentor.

The light giggle falling from Marie’s lips as her eyes followed the snowflakes and she began to try to catch one with her hands out of the air, instantly quitted Anya’s dark thoughts for now and although she felt the need for revenge linger in her veins, almost like a dark beast only waiting to be unleashed, the child’s pure joy at something so innocent at freshly falling snow, warmed her heart again and she watched the girl’s antics with a mute smile. From the corner of her eyes, Anya sensed Lexa watching the scene as well. Marie was definitely not behaving in the proper way for being their second, but they obviously both did not have it in their hearts to scold the girl now. The moments of Marie being carefree and so obviously fascinated had become scarce since her return to Polis and Anya treasured every single one of them greatly.

A smirk pulled at her lips, as she had to tighten her arms around Marie to keep the girl in front of her in the saddle, as her movements increased, stretching slightly towards the snowflakes which slowly became denser around them. It seemed as if they were travelling in the direction of an ongoing snowstorm, so Anya would let Marie enjoy the small peaceful moments for now.

 

 

Chapter 226

Like Anya had already predicted, Marie’s exuberant antics quitted noticeably after some time. The few snowflakes which had beautifully danced around them when the girl had woken, had gotten heavier and a strong wind was now blowing the snow, which had turned more into harsh pieces of ice, hard into their direction, making it hard to keep the eyes open against the icy wind.

Marie burrowed back more firmly against Anya, trying to cower away as much as possible from the ice raining down on them relentlessly.

It did not seem as if the horses were perturbed by the changed weather condition at all, trotting forwards obediently in a never changing fast pace. The warriors on foot ahead of them who constituted the rest of the army would have been slowed down even more by the snow storm, so they would catch up very soon now.

“How far away is the queen’s fortress?” Marie asked, almost too low against the howling wind for Anya to catch.

The general noted on the unmistakable fear within her charge’s tone with a slight frown.

Her mind shortly flashed back to the meeting they had arranged between Roan and Marie, only a few days prior to leaving Polis. Although Marie had been sure that she had wanted to meet with Roan again, she had been shaking with fear then, clinging to Anya’s hands strongly.

Lexa had spoken with the prince of Azgeda beforehand, telling him plainly on how to act around Marie as she had not truly been convinced that agreeing to this meeting had been a good idea. The girl had been moody at best and mentally fragile at worse and she had honestly feared yet another breakdown to occur. Although the prince and his mother did not share much of a physical resemblance, their eyes were absolutely identical and would surely be enough to remember Marie of her tormentor.

Although Roan had seen the girl in a few meetings already, sitting beside the general, he had not spoke a single word with the child in private since her return to the capitol. The physical changes in the child had been painfully obvious and he had assumed that the girl’s change of behaviour might have been because she was truly growing into the role of the commander’s second. But as he had been faced with the frightened girl in their private meeting, it was apparent that the child’s calm and proud demeanour during the meetings had been nothing more than a façade. His mother had obviously hurt the girl far worse than what he had assumed. He had heard some rumours of course and he had found the idea absurd that the child could have returned to the capitol to assassinate the commander. The sweet child he had come to know months ago, would not even have contemplated such an act. But he knew how well versed his mother was in torture method and psychologically breaking a stubborn prisoner. He would not have guessed that someone would put a mere child through such extreme measures, but the way the child’s grey eyes had widened in almost palpable horror when their eyes connected was enough testament that even the wildest rumours which had circulated around had not even come close to the truth. He had tried to get the child to speak to him, trying to sooth her with softly spoken words, but his words had been wasted on Marie and it did not seem as if they had even truly registered in the girl’s panicked mind.

The girl had held herself stiffly through the whole meeting, not saying a single word. The rational part of her mind knew that Roan was not the queen herself and the man had never hurt her. She remembered how they had trained on the ice together and how she had spent the night with the prince without even knowing who the man truly was. Marie had felt safe with him then, but she had not been able to shake off the almost paralyzing fear rooting her to her spot during the meeting.

Marie felt a sliver of the same fear coursing through her mind now, she was keenly aware of the fact that every step of the horse was carrying her a little further towards having to face the queen again. A part of her wished to turn to Lexa and beg the woman to make them stop and turn back. She was afraid of what was going to transpire at the queen’s fortress.

When Anya failed to give her an answer after several long moments, Marie repeated her question just a little louder again.

Anya shook of the memory of their meeting and focused her attention back on the presence. “Not more than another day of travel” she assessed truthfully. Once they had caught up with the army, Lexa would surely soon call to make camp for the night and according to Ontari the fortress in which the queen was most probably residing now, would be reachable on the end of the next day.

They could not know for sure how their welcome would look like there. It could range from the queen’s army awaiting them, with the fortresses’ defences raised for a long siege, up to finding only a rather small number of Azgeda warriors. The queen had sawn rumours of being in another fortress altogether, but Lexa’s spies had all belied the rumours before the army had left Polis. Ontari had also confirmed that the queen rarely remained in her actual fortress at times of war, preferring a smaller fortress which had thicker walls, many hidden corridors and was all in all easier to defend.

Marie swallowed forcefully, feeling Anya’s arms settle firmer around her yet again. She tried to relax again, focusing on the woman’s warmth and scent surrounding her. She glanced over at Lexa, feeling the weight of the woman’s gaze resting on herself heavily for a few moments. She tried to muster a smile, but she felt herself that it was not really convincing. She tried to cover the grimace from rising onto her features, the tea which Lexa had prepared for her had all but lost its effects by now and her head was yet again pounding strongly.

“Is the pain bearable?” Lexa leaned over towards Anya and the child slightly. Gustus and Ryder were the only ones riding close enough to hear her words anyway.

Marie winced slightly, she guessed that it depended on the definition of bearable. But she was fairly certain that neither Lexa nor Anya would have said anything about any kind of pain if they had been in her situation, so she nodded in mute agreement to the commander’s question.

Lexa frowned a little, sensing that Marie was not being exactly truthful in her answer. She did not like being lied to in such a fashion, but she was fairly certain that Marie was just trying to appear strong for the sake of her position. She motioned Gustus closer, ordering the burly guard to seek out a healer, asking for something to take off the edge of the child’s pain. She could not stop the group for the girl’s sake as she was still able to remain in the saddle with Anya’s help, but she could still try to get the child as comfortable as possible in their situation.

Marie tilted her head to the side slightly when Gustus closed up to the general’s hazelnut horse short moments later and offered a small bundle of herbs to her. She distinctly remembered having been given some yellow flowers against pain before, so she did not question on what to do with the herbs now, but rather took them without hesitation and gingerly began to chew on them. She grimaced immediately at the immensely bitter taste invading her sense. “Why does all of this stuff have to taste so vile?” she exclaimed with a protesting frown.

Anya rolled her eyes at the girl’s grouchiness, choosing not to make any comment at all.

A light smile ghosted around the corners of Lexa’s lips as she watched Marie’s antics with amusement. She sobered quickly again, once her ears picked up on the faint sounds of the army ahead of them, slowly drowning over the sound of the howling wind.

Marie ceased her grumbling as well when she noticed how Lexa and Anya both seemed tenser, spurring their horses on to move just a little quicker still. It took her much longer to pick up the sounds of the army ahead of them and when she did, she frowned, wondering just how many warriors were walking in front of them. Even against the wind, the sounds were not loud and clear, although she could not make out any physical signs of them just yet, but she could also hear the steady beat of various war drums setting the pace for the army. It suddenly felt as if the whole ground might be vibrating ahead of them, jostled by the force of numerous feet moving at the same pace and goose bumps raised the hair on her arms and neck, sending a shiver through her frame.

When Marie glanced over at Ontari, who had been riding beside them in absolute silence, she was slightly taken aback by the grimness of the older girl’s features and although her dark eyes stared ahead of them, Marie thought that they were filled with an almost bitter determination.

She let her gaze shortly travel over the other members of the group who she could see without having to twist around too much in the saddle. Anya was already wearing a disparaging expression, but had not yet reprimanded her to remain still.

Marie could see the same tenseness and almost excited anticipation in most of the generals riding with them, only the other members of Skykru appeared a little out of place. They obviously suffered the most from the bitter cold and exhaustion was already visible on their features. Raven and Clarke were banding nervous looks once the sounds of the war drums could not be ignored any longer and Marie felt a little better seeing proof of the fact that she was not the only one not truly looking forward to the battle which would come.

~ ~ ~

Once the rearguard of the army came into view on the horizon, Lexa spurred her steed onwards even quicker.

The army immediately seemed to part in the middle and Marie had a strange thought in her mind. She remembered that she had heard that Moses had divided the sea and it somehow appeared as if the army parting for their commander, was the sea now. She minutely wondered how all the warriors were even suddenly aware of their presence, she had not been able to detect a single one of them turning to look behind themselves.

It took her a moment to realize that some of the war drums were having a different rhythm now and one of the many lessons she had had with Anya came back to her mind. The war drums and their distinct patterns were used easily to carry signals through the whole army without them having to be shouted out loud. Most of the patterns and their meanings had slipped her mind unfortunately, but she was fairly certain that the war drums must have already broadcasted the commander’s arrival.

Her grey eyes widened distinctly, when they had reached approximately half of the army, now being sandwiched by the large force of warriors. When she glanced behind them, she could barely make out the end of the army and neither could she truly identify where the very first line of warriors was walking far ahead of them. It would probably be utterly impossible for her to try to count all of the warriors, but she had severely misjudged the size of the army. Marie had naively thought that the whole army of the coalition had marched on the Mountain in the past, but seeing the sheer size of the army now, that never could have been true. This army was easily built up out of at least thrice that many warriors. She wondered why Lexa had not gathered the full force of the coalition against the Mountain. She would remember to question her on it at one point.

She understood now why Lexa had emphasized the fact that every single hour of delay for the army would increase their need for supplies already. Marie had great difficulties to even try to picture just how much food the whole army would consume at a single meal, let alone a travel of several days. She guessed that at least water would not become a problem. The terrain they were moving over now, was already covered in a relatively thick layer of snow. The memory of herself wandering through the snow in her instinctual attempt to flee from Ontari, only to return and try to keep the nightblood girl alive, melting snow for them to drink as well, flashed up in front of her eyes minutely.

Marie glanced over at Ontari in silence. She was not really sure how many months ago the two of them had met. She knew that the circumstances had been less than ideal, but she was glad to have the older nightblood girl as a friend now. Ontari’s behaviour and mindset had changed completely since their first meeting and Marie could only hope that she would be able to change back to her old self with more time as well.

The nightblood girl shortly caught her gaze, now that they were travelling with the army together, the pace was reduced considerably, giving Ontari the opportunity to let her guard down and her gaze wander a little as well. Ontari gave her a fleeting smile, dark eyes flashing with worry minutely for the younger girl’s health and Marie tried to convey with her eyes that she was faring all right. She highly doubted that she would have been able to ride for that long on her own, as she still felt that the world was moving and even spinning at times weirdly in front of her eyes, but Anya was easily keeping her securely up in the saddle.

Marie did not know for how long they would continue to ride. A number of scouts had already made a detour to the commander, quickly relaying what they had found ahead. From what she had been able to understand, the army had already encountered a number of Ice Nation warriors. Marie was fairly certain that these warriors would have easily been dealt with and killed without the need to actually hear that articulated in words.

The storm seemed to slowly calm around themselves and Lexa gave the order to signal to the army that they would make camp for the night. It was useless to try to continue and search for a place which would allow easier cover. The terrain of Azgeda often only offered open planes and there were absolutely no trees in sight any longer either.

Marie breathed out a quiet sigh of relief when Anya pulled on the reigns and the hazelnut horse ceased moving immediately. Although the bitter herbs had clearly achieved some relieve and taken away the edge of the pounding in her skull, Marie’s legs felt almost numb from a combination of the harsh unrelenting cold wind and the uncomfortable position for hours without end. Her stomach had also begun to audibly proclaim its hunger some time ago and she would definitely eat more now than she had had at breakfast.

Anya almost automatically steadied the girl after she had dismounted and helped her from her steed. Marie appeared a little shaky on her legs, but the girl had held up better than she had anticipated. She acknowledged the slightly sheepish expression of the child with a mute squeeze to her shoulders, before she turned slightly and handed over the reigns of her horse to one of the younger warriors who had been assigned with the duty to take care of all the mounts.

~ ~ ~

“Why is it taking so long?” Marie asked, turning to Ontari with a little pout. Lexa and Anya had left the both of them for a few moments, speaking with the other generals for now. They now stood in front of the commander’s tent or rather what would be the tent in hopefully only a few short moments.

Ontari raised a brow at the younger girl in silent question. She did not know for certain after what Marie was asking at all. By the way the blonde girl was glaring at the warriors erecting the tent for them, she had a good guess now though. “It takes as long as it takes” she retorted calmly.

Marie rolled her eyes, before her eyes narrowed at the older girl “Not you too!” she exclaimed a little hotly. She remembered Lexa using the very same words in a situation before, telling her that she was clearly lacking patience.

Ontari’s brows knitted together in confusion and she was still contemplating internally what Marie meant, when the child spoke up again.

“I swear, Lexa used exactly these words before” Marie explained quickly with a pointed look.

Ontari frowned slightly for a moment, wondering since when she had begun to use phrases from the commander. She had definitely not been consciously aware of doing so at all before now. She was also not entirely comfortable with the concept and what it actually meant. She would have even felt more comfortable if Marie had said that she was using the general’s wordings. Although she had by now probably spent nearly as much time in the commander’s presence as in the general’s, in her mind there still remained the invisible barrier of power. Ontari was always aware of the fact that the brunette Trikru woman was indeed the commander, a fact which the blonde child seemed completely oblivious to in private.

Her attention was fortunately diverted from her train of thought when one of the warriors stepped up to them, proclaiming that they were welcome to enter the commander’s tent now. Ontari minutely wondered what the other warriors might be thinking of the fact that she was allowed to share a living space with their leader, but she guessed that it did not matter in any form at all. It definitely showed her that the commander trusted her now.

Marie sighed out loudly in relief, grabbing onto one of Ontari’s arms and almost dragging the older girl inside, who seemed rather lost in her own thoughts. She smiled slightly when she noticed that a fire had already been lit and her smile widened when she spotted that something to eat and drink had also already been provided.

Ontari snorted lightly under her breath at the girl’s overly dramatic antics, sitting down across from her. She would have never thought possible just how much a single child from the Sky could have changed her life. She was not foolish enough to assume that she would have ever been allowed to live and learn separated from Nia, neither would she have had any motivation to even consider changing her mindset. It was a rather weird thought for her to realize that she would most likely be dead by now if Marie was not existing. Even if she would have somehow managed to miraculously take out the conclave and the commander and had taken up command herself, she highly doubted now that she would have lasted long. She would have missed the foresight to keep the clans together and she knew by now how dangerous the life of a commander was when there was unrest among the clans. She could not put into words to Marie just how grateful she was for recognizing someone worth saving inside of her, when no one else would have even considered. She only watched the girl eat with a kind smile, while her thoughts played out in silence, maybe she would find the words one day to explain to Marie just how much of an impact she had had on her life.

 

Chapter 227

When Lexa and Anya arrived within the commander’s tent, Ontari and Marie had obviously already finished eating. The nightblood girl was telling Marie a story as it seemed and the blonde child was leaning slightly against Ontari, listening attentively to her very word, although it was plainly obvious that she would not be doing so for very long. The girl’s eyes were already beginning to droop as the day’s journey had clearly exhausted the injured child.

“Has she eaten?” Anya interrupted the nightblood girl’s tale briskly, more worried for Marie than letting them enjoy the moment for now. It was late already and she wished to only eat shortly and directly retire afterwards as well. Marie clearly needed all the rest she could get as well at the moment.

Marie frowned slightly, affront at having been interrupted like that and not even being addressed in person glimmered in her grey eyes, but before she could say anything, Ontari beat her to it.

“Yes, she ate enough” the nightblood girl commented, although she had still been rather lost within her own thoughts, she had absentmindedly kept watch over the younger girl. She had noticed before leaving Polis that Anya and the commander likewise seemed alarmed at the small portions Marie only ate and most of the times just after having been prompted to eat anything at all.

Anya nodded curtly in mute acknowledgement, while Marie huffed under her breath, turning a slight glare towards Ontari and moving away from the older girl.

“No more meetings today?” she asked, looking directly at Lexa with hopeful grey eyes.

Lexa shook her head in the negative “No more meetings” she echoed in agreement and amusement flashed through her green eyes at the clearly pleased look settling on Marie’s features at the news.

Marie watched Lexa and Anya mutely as the two women took off their armour for the day and changed into more suitable clothing for sleeping. Alira had brought another tea to the commander’s tent while they had still been eating and she barely felt any discomfort from the large bump on her forehead at the moment.

A definite frown settled on Anya’s features when the child seemed to specifically wait for Lexa to come to bed and how Marie immediately crawled closer to her former second, settling into the young leader’s arms for sleep.

Lexa only briefly bandied a look with her former mentor. She did not know why Marie was actively seeking her out now and had made no move to cuddle up to Anya, when the older woman had lied down beside her moments ago already. But she would surely not deny the girl her closeness when she obviously wanted it at the moment. Maybe Marie was more worried about what the next day might bring for herself than for Anya, but Lexa regarded such a train of thought rather unlikely for their daughter. The girl did not seem to discriminate between them so far and she highly doubted that she would start doing so either in the future.

“Lexa?” Marie quipped up again, remembering that she had wanted to ask the commander something just as she was about to fall asleep.

Lexa looked at the girl, brows raised in silent question, waiting for her to state her mind.

“Why are there so many warriors now?” Marie asked, voice tinted with honest curiosity.

Lexa was slightly surprised by the girl’s question; she had not expected for Marie think of matters as this. “The army consists of almost the full force of the coalition, Marie” she explained in a kind tone.

Marie frowned at the answer “There were not even a third as many at the Mountain” she contradicted.

Lexa inclined her head in acknowledgment “The war against the Mountain had been too spontaneous for all the clans to send their warriors” she easily deflected the question. She was still surprised that Marie had even noticed such a thing at all, let alone wondered about it enough to care to question for a reason.

Marie nodded with a little hum, mulling the answer over in her head, as she snuggled back up a little tighter to Lexa. She had been there for the preparation of the war after all and she knew that the Trikru army had originally gathered to take care of first the other delinquents and later Skykru. The war against the Mountain had truly almost suddenly appeared on the horizon when Lexa had accepted to work with Skykru after speaking with Clarke.

It made sense that this war now had been prepared for longer. She had distinctly heard that Lexa had begun its preparation once the queen had sent her cut off braids to the commander, as a sign of her death. Although her hair was slowly growing back, she still mourned the loss of her long hair and could barely wait for the day that it would have grown back to its original length completely.

Even though Marie felt distinctly safe within Lexa’s arms, she could not really get her thoughts to quite down. Once she had stopped contemplating about her hair, her thoughts irrevocably turned to the queen. She knew from Anya’s estimation that they would reach her fortress on the very next day. She kept on imagining all the traps that the queen could have had put into place and her fantasy provided much too visible ideas on how Lexa, Anya and Ontari could die on the next day.

Lexa tried humming the old lullaby to Marie, feeling how a certain tenseness lingered in the girl’s body and she kept on shifting subtly as if she was unable to truly find a comfortable position.

Anya who had previously turned her back to her the two, turned back around after long moments and the brief flash of irritation at girl melted from her mind, being replaced immediately with worry at the girl’s apparent restlessness. She reached out and placed a hand on the girl’s back, letting her feel that she was there as well.

“You cannot die…” Marie breathed out, tone barely loud enough for them to catch and tinted strongly with desperation, clearly addressing both of them likewise.

Lexa and Anya bandied a look over the girl’s head, neither of them wanted to lie to the girl and they knew that there was no sensible possibility to make such a promise neither of them could vow to keep.

“Sleep, little star” Anya said instead, letting her hand caress lightly over the girl’s back, while Lexa continued to lowly hum the melody of the lullaby.

Fortunately, the combination seemed to do the trick and Lexa felt Marie’s body relax within her arms only a few moments later as sleep finally claimed her mind for good. She only hoped that the girl’s exhaustion would be deep enough to suppress her usual nightmares or neither of them would get too much sleep this night and all of them direly needed to rest. A moment of inattentiveness could easily end deadly on the impending day.

~ ~ ~

It seemed that Lexa’s slight hope had been granted and Marie remained peacefully asleep until Anya rose on the next morning, well before the sun had even begun to rise.

Although it was almost painfully obvious how afraid and tense Marie was, Lexa still found it necessary to remind the girl of something during breakfast. Neither of them had said much more than a quick good morning so far before that.

“Once we reach Nia’s fortress, Marie, you will do everything you are told, right to the point” Lexa addressed the younger girl and her eyes were hard and tone unrelenting.

Marie blinked up at the woman with a slightly confused frown. She had not consciously disregarded any orders to her knowledge.

“You did not leave me behind at our encounter with the pauna, you will do so now, if you are ordered to” Lexa explained and her expression was strict.

Marie’s brows scrunched together and she felt reluctance rise in her mind. She remembered now that Lexa had scolded her lightly for that during their night in the foods, but she had already reasoned back then that she could not have left the woman behind and she would surely not do so now. She was keenly aware of the fact that she would actually be the only one able to safe Lexa and Anya - she was not sure if her talent would work with Ontari as well – if it came to it. No healer would be able to help the two women in a way that she could and could truly not understand that Lexa was already hinting at the possibility for them to have to separate.

Anya watched the emotions flit through Marie’s grey eyes with internal resignation. No matter what sort of promise Lexa would force the child to give now, it was apparent already that the blonde girl would not hesitate to break it, if that meant saving Lexa and she was aware without the need for actual words that the same would hold true for herself as well. The girl loved the two of them too deeply to contemplate letting them die, if she could help it somehow. It was absurd of Lexa to even try to hinder Marie from doing so. It only worried Anya that she was fairly certain that Marie would not hesitate on using her powers on the battle field if one of them would get lethally wounded.

Anya glanced over at Ontari; she was relatively sure that the nightblood girl would indeed do exactly what she was told. Before Marie had literally fallen into her life, Anya would have easily proclaimed the opinion that following an order, no matter how absurd it might appear, was always the better choice. But somehow Marie seemed resistant to that whole mindset and Anya was not sure any longer if that was such a bad thing at all.

Ontari was visibly confused by the commander’s words, but kept obediently silent. The nightblood girl rarely contributed to the conversations, usually only speaking up if she had been directly addressed and was required to give a verbal answer. The only exceptions were to sometimes explain something to Marie or to try to make her see a different view of certain aspects. The girl was much more talkative being along with Marie as Anya had quiet often witnessed by now.

Marie still had not said a single thing to Lexa’s orders, only looking at the woman with a frown.

After long moments of silence, Lexa huffed out a frustrated sigh, standing from the table abruptly, sensing that she would not get any kind of promise from the girl which she could trust even remotely. It was almost comical how she did not consider the fact at all that she could very well be the one losing her own life during the confrontation with Nia, but was so worried for Marie’s survival that she let her feeling and her need to protect her daughter overrule her rational mind like that.

Marie watched Lexa almost storm out of the tent with a slightly opened mouth, words stuck in her throat and she felt her heart drop into her stomach, when the commander did not even throw a glance back before leaving the tent altogether. She wanted to stand up and follow after her, but was stopped by Anya grabbing onto one of her wrists suddenly.

She stared at the general with turmoiled grey eyes, desperately wishing to understand what had just happened.

Anya’s brown eyes were soft and her tone kind as she explained to Marie briskly that Lexa was obviously as tense as she was and clearly worrying for her.

Marie frowned, but nodded with visibly hunched shoulders. She hoped that she would get the opportunity to briefly speak with Lexa again before they would break camp. She shortly looked over at Ontari, but the older girl only offered her a compassionate gaze, still not saying anything.

~ ~ ~

Marie’s eyes widened visibly once they left the commander’s tent a few moments later. She had of course seen how big the army must have been during the previous evening, but seeing endless rows and rows of tents in front of her eyes still was a weird sight to behold. She could not really see from their positions just where the tents started and where they ended. But it was obvious that the break of the camp was ongoing as tents were already dismantled all around them.

When she spotted Lexa already standing with her steed, Marie quickly stepped away from Anya and Ontari, intent on at least apologising to the woman. She would never promise to leave her behind though and she was slightly affronted that Lexa would even think her capable of doing so.

Lexa sighed under her breath, when she saw Marie quickly approaching her.

Marie looked up at Lexa with intent and she was glad that beside Gustus and Ryder already waiting with their own horses, who stood a few paces away, none of the others were there yet, so she could speak freely without having to fear to be overheard by someone. “I am sorry but I would never leave you behind” she proclaimed and she pressed her lips together slightly. She knew that she should not contradict the commander’s words in such a fashion, she would appear disrespectful and disobedient if someone else heard her, but she was not thinking of Lexa in her political function now. She would also never leave Anya behind.

Lexa sighed again, she was torn between reprimanding the girl and simply enveloping her into her arms. Within her dreams she had pictured Marie somehow falling back into Nia’s clutches. The Ice queen had presented her with the choice to exchange places with Marie and she had not hesitated for a single moment. The fear of such an event actually coming to pass, had not completely left her mind just yet, no matter how hard Lexa tried to push it from her thoughts.

“I am aware, Marie” she answered in a grave tone. She would never be able to forgive herself if the child was harmed because of her. But Lexa knew how hypocritical it had been to even ask for such a promise from the girl. She still saw the worry underlying Marie’s apparent insubordination, the girl was afraid enough about what would happen as it was. Lexa forced a calmer expression onto her features and she lightly pulled the girl into a hug for a few moments.

Marie tightened her arms around Lexa, feeling slightly lighter with the proof that the woman was not really angry with her.

~ ~ ~

Marie was truly surprised to watch how quick and efficient the army was in breaking down the camp, she would not have believed that it was even possible for such a huge camp to be dismantled so quickly. But it did not seem as if they had waited long at all until the generals of their respective units signalled that they were ready to leave.

Marie was allowed to ride on her own again with the strict order to say something immediately should she begin to feel worse or experience any kind of dizziness at all. Anya helped her onto the grey horse and slowly the whole army began to move.

The pace was so much slower now that they were surrounded on all sides by warriors on foot. Marie was still slightly awed by the fact of how quickly the warriors were still able to move, she doubted that she would have been able to hold up with them for very long.

During the day they passed through other villages and Marie swallowed forcefully once she noticed a few obviously freshly slain warriors lying at the edges of their path.

“They have been foolish to try to fight against a whole army” Ontari commented from her side, having caught the younger girl’s startled expression. She was convinced by now that the largest force Nia had at hand would be awaiting their approach directly in front of the queen’s fortress. They had not encountered enough warriors on their path to allow another assumption.

Marie shivered slightly at the way Ontari had spoken so offhandedly and she could barely tear her eyes from the snow which was slowly being tinted red. She swallowed forcefully, knowing already that she would be seeing much more deaths in the upcoming days and she felt slightly foolish for the way it still perturbed her somehow at all.

~ ~ ~

Marie frowned in confusion when Lexa suddenly raised her hand and the war drums immediately changed their rhythmic beating and the complete army pulled to a stop only short moments later. She could not detect anything amiss and had no idea of what was going on.

It seemed as if the atmosphere had changed as well and the whole air suddenly was felt with a strange buzzing energy. Marie felt the grey horse under her trample around in nervous restlessness at the change as well and she cast a worried glance towards Ontari; Lexa and Anya had moved a little ahead, quickly speaking to the other generals. “What is going on?” she asked the older nightblood girl, grey eyes flitting nervously between the other girl and the place where she could see Lexa and Anya.

Ontari’s expression was a little grim, she had recognized this place as well. They were not far now from Nia’s fortress and she had already told the commander that the ice plane they would need to cross now, which was the last distance they needed to cover, could have been relatively easily manipulated to turn it into a dangerous maze of unstable ice. Nia’s troops would surely await them shortly behind the ice planes or rather behind the constriction which followed immediately afterwards.

Nia’s fortress was surrounded by icy sharp cliffs on all sides, leaving only a very narrow path to the entrance. Lexa had asked her if there was no other way around the obstacle, but it would not be feasible for the army to try to climb over the cliffs, too many would lose their life before they could reach the fortress. Crossing the narrowing was also a problem. Even though the coalition’s army was much grander in numbers, that would matter very little if only a small portion of them would be able to cross through the narrowing at once.

“We have nearly reached our destination” Ontari proclaimed, eyes only shortly flicking to the younger girl. She wondered why the brunette young woman from Skykru had been called forth and her frown only deepened when Anya motioned her over as well.

“Do you think that the path will be blocked completely if Raven uses her explosives on some of cliffs?” Lexa immediately asked her.

Ontari blinked at the commander for a few moments. She had never seen actual explosives being used, but she had heard tales of a Skykru woman destroying a bridge with a single can of some sorts. “I don’t know” she answered honestly, although slightly reluctant as she could not offer any real input at all.

“Oh, I wanna blow something up” Raven chimed in and seemed completely ignorant to most of the generals turning a bewildered look towards her. “It can work” she reasoned, only speaking to the commander directly “If I could blow up a bridge with the improvised bomb, I can definitely destroy some old rocks with my babies now” she proclaimed, eyes almost shining with excited mirth.

Lexa contemplated their options for a few moments in silence. Raven would need to be protected while she placed her bombs, but Ontari’s cautioned words about the narrowing and her own strategical thinking realized that giving this a try was probably for the best. Internally, Lexa could not really believe that she was agreeing to let a Skykru woman use bombs in such a way, a weapon which none of them understood, but she would use everything to her advantage which she could right now.

So, she nodded solemnly in confirmation.

Anya watched the younger woman turn with a frown. “Let the war begin” Raven proclaimed almost cheerfully, clearly giddy with the prospect of actual being allowed to put her explosives to usage.

“Imagine Marie would be like that” she commented under her breath to Lexa, still looking behind Raven in disbelieve.

Lexa blinked at her former mentor and a look of slight horror crossed her features “I’d rather not” she commented almost drily.

 

Chapter 228

Watching Raven set up the bombs was interesting on one side and quiet terrifying on the other. Marie still remembered vividly how she had come to the scene of the blown-up bridge and how Tris had suddenly appeared from the treeline, stumbling and with blood on her lips, before the older girl had collapsed and died only a few hours later. The memory of feeling the earth vibrate beneath them, resonating the explosion which had destroyed the Mountain for good, was also ingrained deeply within her mind and Marie doubted that she would ever forget it again.

When Marie looked around herself, she quickly noted that she was not the only one watching Raven tinkering around with some weirdly shaped block like objects, connecting them with various wirers. Bellamy and Clarke assisted Raven, when the brunette mechanic gave them an instruction but kept their hands off of the things otherwise.

Marie stood directly next to Anya, even leaning against the general slightly. Lexa was speaking with some other generals and had told her to remain with Anya for now, so being in contact with the general would need to be enough for her.

Quiet a number of warriors had assembled around Raven and her things, keeping an obviously respectful distance, but also eying the alien equipment with barely veiled interest. Marie was not sure if all of the onlookers were truly honest in their interest, some wore definitely distrustful expressions. Although Marie had not really seen Raven work so far, she had been told that the young woman had set up a machine from the Mountain in the medical bay of the Ark which had been used by Abby to examine her months ago. She could not remember what had really happened, but Anya had told her about the proceedings afterwards. So, Marie guessed that Raven must know what she was doing at the moment, she highly doubted that Lexa would have allowed the Skykru mechanic’s involvement if she did not believe in her abilities either.

She borrowed herself a little closer to Anya, when she noticed Roan approaching them in the company of two burly warriors. Marie was not sure if the man was in fact still more or less a political prisoner or if the warriors were rather there to protect the Ice prince. She knew theoretically that the man had no intention to harm her, he had shown as much already, but she still felt fear grip her mind in an almost automatic reaction. She did not even understand fully why she was reacting to him in this fashion now, she had after all trusted the man without even knowing him previously.

Marie wondered why the Ice prince was with the army at all. She distinctly remembered that Lexa had once promised him a chance to challenge his mother to a duel for her throne. But she was fairly certain that the queen would never agree to such a challenge, probably choosing to execute her own son for being a traitor to the loyal blood line and the crown.

“The ice planes will have been manipulated” Roan proclaimed, addressing Anya, as his proposal to speak to the commander had been denied for now.

Anya inclined her head “Ontari already pointed that out. If you do not know of a way around them, then my second has already told us everything” she retorted. She had felt the child pressing itself firmer against herself and she glared lightly at the Ice princess; his mere presence was obviously putting Marie on edge.

Roan’s lips thinned for a moment, before he sharply nodded “There is no way around the ice planes, neither around the narrow path towards the fortress. But I am certain that Ontari will not know of a few short cuts that I know within the fortress” clear satisfaction had settled onto his features at having superior knowledge.

Anya dangerously narrowed her eyes at the smug man “Short cuts leading to where?” she asked in a sharp tone.

Roan met the general’s gaze for long moments in silence as if he was enjoying watching the Trikru woman visibly losing her patience with him with every passing second, before he finally offered “To protected quarters within the fortress. My mother will most likely barricade herself there. If the army can fight its way to the entrance of the fortress, I can bring you to my lovely mother” his eyes flashed darkly for a moment.

Marie took in a sharp breath, grasping onto on of Anya’s arms and pulling it around herself in a weird envelope.

Anya minutely glanced down at the girl, but did not make any comment on her behaviour. Instead she looked up again, meeting Roan’s gaze with the thirst for revenge drumming hotly in her veins “That would be lovely” she acknowledged. She internally wondered why the man had not shared this knowledge with the commander beforehand. They had after all agreed that Roan would freely share all details which might aid in taking out his mother in exchange for the throne of Azgeda and Lexa’s support in his crowning. She narrowed her eyes at the man, although she believed that he truly wished for his mother to be removed from the throne, she was not entirely convinced that the prince could still somehow twist and use the war only for his personal gain. It was reasonable to assume that the man would be holding a grudge towards Lexa, she had after all as the commander made his banishment from Ice Nation and delivery into the capitol one requirement for accepting the clan into her coalition. Nia had only begrudgingly agreed to the terms of the commander, but the Ice queen in reality had not had much of a choice if she wanted Azgeda not to have to stand alone against the clans, like she was now.

Once Roan finally turned around, leaving them alone again, Anya loosened her arm out of Marie’s grasp, kneeling down in front of the girl. She looked at her intently, waiting until their eyes met and the clear panic visible in Marie’s grey eyes tore at Anya’s heart painfully “You will not be with us when we capture Nia” she assured to the child in a decisive tone.

Lexa and she had briefly discussed this a few days ago. The ideal outcome of finally facing the queen would be for Roan to kill his mother, but something in Anya’s mind told her that the prince would hesitate and Lexa had agreed with her. Another viable possibility would be to simply execute the queen for her transgressions against the coalition’s laws. But it was entirely possible that the queen would not readily let herself be capture and surrender but rather chose to fight until her last breath. Lexa and she had agreed immediately that they did not wish for Marie to have to really come face to face with the woman who had hurt her so deeply ever again. This way they could also be absolutely sure that Nia could impossibly get a hold of Marie and injure her ever again.

Marie looked up at the woman with a frown. She was the commander’s and the general’s second and by thus her place was beside both of the women and surely not anywhere else during a fight. She also did not wish to get separated from them for too long, being too afraid that either of them could be injured during her absence, no matter how brief. “But…” she began to retort, brows creased together.

Anya shook her head and a little firmness underlined her tone “The decision is final, Marie” she put an end to the girl’s argument before it could have even begun.

Marie let her shoulders drop in clear agitation and her disappointment at the whole situation was palpable in her poise.

Anya’s expression softened slightly as she pulled the girl into a brief hug “You will not have to see Nia again, little star, we shall make sure of that” she whispered the reassurance into the child’s ears before they separated again.

Marie was not entirely convinced if she should feel reassured by the information. She somehow really feared what the queen might be holding in stock for Lexa and Anya or actually anyone who came too close to her. But she still felt a little touched at the obvious attempt to keep her safe that way. She hoped that at least Ontari would remain with her then, she could already picture how watching the two women leave to capture the queen would feel like. She did not have any further time to dwell on it, as Raven had obviously finished her preparation.

Beside herself, Marie could not contain her light giggle at seeing the clearly frightened reactions flash over the warriors’ features which were told that they would need to help Raven carry her bombs, making sure that not a single one of them would touch the ground or fall down, because all of them would detonate at once in that case.

Marie was confused when Anya did not lead them back towards the horses and she noticed only now that a few warriors had begun to erect tents right where they stood.

“The horses will not be able to pass the ice planes” Anya answered the girl’s mute confusion. The healers would mostly remain with tents as well, together with some troops of reinforcement. They still did not know if they were preparing for a longer siege and starting do so could come in handy later.

Marie nodded in understanding. She had no clear imagination as to how manipulated ice planes would actually look like. She glanced up with a nervous expression when Lexa stepped up to her. The commander’s green eyes seemed to gleam dangerously beneath the dark war paint smudged over her features and Marie was reminded vividly of the first time when she had seen Lexa in her full commander regalia. The woman’s armour had been adjusted slightly to allow for the inclusion of fur line warmer clothing and a heavier cloak, but beside that Marie could not detect obvious changes in the young leader.

“Keep close to me and Anya” Lexa addressed Marie in a calm tone. Her mind had already switched to battle mode and the previous slight anticipation which she had felt buzzing through her veins, had quitted down, leaving her senses sharpened and ready for the battle to finally begin in earnest.

Marie nodded with a grave expression. A part of her longed to reach out and grasp onto one of Lexa’s and Anya’s hand, but she was fairly certain that such would not be welcomed now. She needed to keep vigilant now as well, Ontari had cautioned them already that the queen would have used every opportunity to construct deadly booby traps and position hidden warriors of her own to decrease the number of the warriors marching against her.

The ice planes turned out to be a much larger place than Marie had previously imagine. She could not identify immediately what could have been manipulated about them at all. All she could see was what appeared to be an endless surface of ice covered in a light dusting of fresh snow.

Marie even thought the ice looked quite beautiful where it was not covered in snow. It looked different from the ice which had covered the streams around Polis and it was glittering beautifully.

She tugged at Anya’s arm, when she spotted something passing beneath her feet, pointing down. Marie thought it might have been some sort of fish or mutated water creature and she let out a startled yelp when the shape seemed to be turned around by the current of the water and she was suddenly gazing down at the frozen features of a human being.

Her grey eyes remained fixed on the frozen corpse and she could even make out the horrified grimace being frozen in place in a morbid lucidity, until she felt Anya’s hand squeezing her arm lightly to catch her attention.

Marie’s eyes snapped up at Anya again “How did he get there?” she asked, voice shaking slightly.

Anya’s lips thinned slightly and she did not get the chance to answer.

They had stopped in their steps when Marie had suddenly been rooted to the spot only moments ago, warriors had begun to move ahead of them, because Lexa had halted in her step to see what was wrong with Marie as well.

Marie’s eyes widened noticeably when ice only a mere meter away from them suddenly seemed to tear open. She could sense Lexa tensing up beside her and the story the woman had told them about losing one of her brothers to breaking into the ice flashed through her mind.

For a horrified second Marie glanced down at their own feet, already expecting to find cracks in the glittering surface. She frowned in confusion, when she could not spot any cracks. She felt one of Anya’s hands rest on her shoulder, as if the woman wanted to pull her closer.

The warriors standing on the ice which had apparently shifted looked around, being frozen in their steps and Marie could only watch in silent horror how a large chunk of the ice suddenly seemed to be turned over, throwing quiet a number into the icy water beneath in the process and she shuddered when the ice had turned around completely, sliding back into place with a weird almost groaning sound. Her eyes fell to her feet almost automatically and Marie felt her breath getting stuck in her throat painfully when she spotted their own warriors being carried away under the ice. Some were trying to get some purchase on the ice, using their weapons or even their bare hands. But the current seemed too strong for it and they were either carried away or drifted lower as they drowned.

Marie looked up at Anya with wide grey eyes, she now at least understood what was manipulated about the ice planes. They began to move again awfully slowly, broke up into even smaller groups and Marie held her breath in anticipation with every step they took, afraid of feeling the ice turn beneath them.

In the distance she could spot the same happening to a few other groups as well, but it appeared as if most of the warriors reached the end of the ice planes. Marie had seen that the edges of the chunks of ice which had turned over under the weight of the warriors had actually been sharp, as if the ice had been cut on purpose and she guessed that such was the fact as well. The corpse she had spotted before had probably died during the construction of the booby trap. She knew that Trikru were spiking the woods with their own booby traps as well, but not all were deadly and if they were, they mostly only targeted a single person. She also wondered internally how the queen’s own warriors would navigate through the ice planes or if there could be some sort of trick to it.

Anya held the girl back once the narrowing in the path became visible in front of them, pushing her body slightly behind herself. After the ice planes, she highly doubted that there would not be more traps waiting to be activated ahead of them. She would have expected to encounter Ice Nation warriors already, but the sight ahead of them was clear and the snow looked fresh and no tracks were visible. So, it seemed as if the last warriors had passed through this path hours ago already, if not even longer ago.

A small group of warriors was sent ahead, to look for all possible booby traps and find out from which point on they would need to fight through. Lexa called the rest of the army to a stop during the wait. Her eyes flitted between the narrow path and Marie standing leaned against Anya’s legs.

Marie felt as if the wait stretched into eternity but she did not ask for what they even were waiting for exactly. She also wondered how long they would wait still. She guessed that it was entirely possible that all the warriors might have already been taken out by the opposing warriors.

Marie immediately noted that the number of the small group had visibly diminished at their return, but at least some had returned.

She listened to the brief report one of them gave to Lexa in hushed tones, standing close enough to the commander to understand most of it. They had encountered quiet a number of booby traps and although they had even found a few of them without triggering them and had been able to dismantle them without losses, not all of them had been so lucky. But they did not seem to have encountered any Ice Nation warriors.

Lexa contemplated the report for a few moments. It worried her slightly that there was still no sign of Nia’s troops. She knew that the woman still had enough of warriors at her hand, not enough to match up to her army, but enough to cause huge losses. If she were in Nia’s shoes, she would have definitely positioned at least some of her forces at the end of the narrow path, it was easier to pick off your opponents one by one after such a natural obstacle. She had already appointed a group of warriors to accompany Raven to her post to start to apply her bombs and she send them ahead now.

Marie frowned when they were told to remain in place for longer, without moving around any longer, she again felt how cold it actually was. “Where do you think are the queen’s warriors?” she asked lowly, her eyes flitting between Anya and Ontari in question. It did not make sense for the queen to not attack in her mind.

Ontari’s lips thinned slightly “Surely not far” she retorted. She was fairly certain that they would show themselves soon as well. She doubted that Nia would have ordered all of her warriors to remain within the fortress. Ice Nation had been cut off from the other clans for such a long time now, that she thought it likely that even the fortress would run out of supplies sooner rather than later now. She guessed that the queen’s troops were keeping themselves hidden for now.

Marie startled strongly when the ground suddenly vibrated beneath them and a cloud of smoke soared ahead of them into the clear sky.

“It is alright” Anya reassured the girl quickly. A larger group of warriors already moved into the direction of the narrow path, having been ordered to clear away the rumble which would surely be lying in the way now. She allowed the child to hold onto her hand for now, until they would need to move closer to the fortress as well.

Marie felt her throat constrict painfully when Anya pried her fingers lose again long moments later. Part of the warriors had returned, proclaiming loudly that the Ice Nation army finally was showing their face. She felt panic rise in her mind and her heart rate increase, when Lexa and Anya simultaneously took out their swords.

“To war!” Lexa proclaimed in a loud yell, which was resonated from all directions and the war finally began for real.

 

 

Chapter 229

Moving forward through the priory truly narrow path felt weird to Marie now. On all sides a few warriors were still busy trying to clear away as much of the rubble as possible.

She felt her stomach roll uncomfortably when the encountered two warriors, supporting one of their comrades. The man in the middle was visibly wounded and she guessed that he must have been standing too close to one of the sides of the explosion, as a piece of chalky rock, equipped with razor sharp edges had lodged itself into his abdomen. The man seemed barely able to keep himself on his feet and the thought that the healers would probably not be able to save the man only minutely flitted through Marie’s mind.

Her attention was caught only the flash of a second later from Anya, suddenly pulling her behind herself with a sharp tug. Marie eyes widened when she spotted a short bolt protruding from the ground, exactly in the place where she had stood only a second ago. She had not even noticed that they were already under attack.

Lexa and Anya both seemed to know where the shooters must be hidden and Ontari pointed upwards and slightly ahead of them. It seemed as if small spaces had been curved into the stony walls, allowing for hideouts of single shooters. Marie doubted that they were expected to come out of this battle alive, as soon as Lexa’s warriors would reach them, they would be picked off easily, but she was somehow sure that the queen would not care a single thing for the loss of a few of her warriors like that.

Only another moment seemed to pass, until Marie could see a larger number of opposing warriors nearing their own front of warriors. The difference between the two fronts was rather obvious because of the different style of clothing and the war paint.

Marie actually froze for a second after Anya had killed the first warriors of the Ice Nation force, as her eyes remained glued to the fallen warrior’s face. The complete face had been painted white with some sort of sticky colour, the eyes and the skin around the eyes had been tinted black with coal and it almost appeared as if red blood was bubbling from the warrior’s lips. For a moment she wondered if the warrior was truly just spewing out blood in his last moments of life, but she saw a moment later on the face of another warrior, directly charging towards her, that his features were painted in the same fashion and that the true substance was truly just colour.

She did not even think twice about how she reacted to the large warrior wanting to attack her. She instinctively took up a defensive stance, deflecting his first blow he had made with a heavy axe and ramming her own sword directly into his abdomen, trying to rip it out as fast as possible and stepping out of his immediate reach at the same time.

Marie felt as if the time was switching between slow motion and passing all too quickly to catch everything which was transpiring around herself. She knew that Lexa, Anya and Ontari were all fighting close to her; she could occasionally make out Ryder and Gustus taking off a few opponents from the commander as well.

If she had thought that they had already faced a lot of warriors by the time, that Marie could make out the end of the narrower path, she was sourly mistaken.

It was as if they had crossed an invisible line without knowing and suddenly, they were shot at not just with arrows and bolts, but it seemed that the other army was using catapults as well.

Gustus and Ryder shielded Lexa with their own bodies, while Anya and Ontari both pulled Marie out of the line of fire as the stronger attacks began.

Large chunks of stone and what appeared to be almost complete tree trunks set aflame were shot in their direction and Marie watched in sickening fascination how one of the warriors assigned to the commander’s group was buried beneath one of the burning pieces of wood. The man’s cries died down quickly and Marie’s eyes flitted over Anya and Lexa quickly, trying to see if the two women might have already gotten hurt.

She could not detect any tears in Lexa’s armour, but most of her gear was completely black, so she doubted that she would be able to easily spot a wound any way. To her internal worry, she could already see a bloody tear on one of Anya’s upper arms. It seemed as if almost everyone else’s attention was clearly fixed ahead of them and she could hear Lexa quickly talking to two generals, giving them a change of orders on how to proceed.

So, without thinking further of it, she stepped closer to Anya, touching the woman’s back from behind, where she was fairly certain that her hands would not be visible to the others standing around themselves right now. Marie had figured out already that it was not necessary for her talent to work to directly touch the wounded area that she wanted to heal, but general contact seemed to be enough.

It did take her only a brief second to feel the buzz of her healing talent at the tips of her fingers and Marie hoped to look as unobtrusive and innocent as possible, as she let go of Anya only a moment later.

Anya immediately felt it, when the girl used her talent, healing the cut on her upper arm in only a second. The burning pain which had been absolutely excruciating the first time that Marie had used her talent on her, seemed to decrease as well with every further time that the child healed a wound for her. It still felt uncomfortable, but Anya did not show any reaction at all, although she internally longed to turn around and physically shake the child for her stupidity at using her talent so blatantly in the open. Her brown eyes scanned over their immediate surroundings quickly and she felt her nerves settle a little at the realization that no one was paying her or Marie any special mind at the moment, so no one had obviously witnessed her miraculous healing.

She knew that the child could not have suffered anything more than a few scratches if anything. From what she had seen, Marie had fought well. It was obvious that the girl could pass off as a highly trained already. What she was lacking in physical size and strength, she was mostly able to make up for with agility now.

Anya had not spent as much time with Marie on the training pits since her return from the north, as she would have liked to and she was internally immensely relieved that the child was in fact now freezing up in battle, but was using the techniques which she had been taught. To her slight dismay Anya had to recognize that Marie was instinctively using quiet a number of moves, which she had most definitely not taught to Marie. They seemed to play into the fact that the girl had right from the beginning tended to leave her defences too low and charged right at her opponent. But it was obvious that the girl was barely paying any mind to the fact that she could easily be taken down by an opponent who would deflect her own first attacks.

The girl was also paying very little attention to the warriors surrounding her from her own side. She had seen the same style in Ontari already. It was obvious that both girls had been taught mostly by the same people and had been drilled to only depend on themselves. She made a mental note to teach both girls more in depths about how to efficiently fight with a partner, if they all survived this battle that is.

Marie felt Anya’s disparaging gaze resting on herself for long moments, but she met the woman’s eyes unfaced. She was fortunate enough that Anya could not outright say anything to her now, without them being overheard by others.

It took only a few moments longer until warriors carrying heavy shields arrived at their position and Marie watched with a baited breath, how they formatted into what looked to her like an unbreachable wall of shields. They were even covering their heads with heavy shields. Between the warriors carrying the shields, who all seemed to be wearing the thickest and sturdiest armour, Marie spotted a few slimmer warriors, looking more agile and they moved with the wall of shields towards the front of the Ice Nation warriors.

Marie tugged at Anya’s sleeve lightly, wanting to know when they would follow the other warriors. She could not remember that the war against the Mountain had contained such long moments of waiting time and time again. She could understand that the commander in person would not always be in the forefront of the army.

“We shall add battle strategies to your training once we return to Polis” Anya retorted with a slight frown. In her mind such a question was rather unnecessary at the moment.

Marie pouted lightly as a sheepish expression crossed over her features. She could not ask Lexa at the moment, as the woman was still speaking to other generals.

Ontari had caught the younger girl’s question as well and readily explained “Moving pure infantry against siege engines, such as catapults, or long-range weaponry like crossbows and bows would only lead to high losses.”

Marie nodded along in understanding. The older girl’s words made perfect sense and she threw a slightly accusing gaze towards Anya, offended that the woman had not simply explained the facts to her.

Anya rolled her eyes slightly and even on the battlefield she felt a small surge of amusement at the girl’s antics flash through her mind. She was grateful for the fact that Ontari seemed to have sort of taken up the role of an older sister to Marie in the past months.

Marie looked up again, when she felt one of Lexa’s hands coming to rest on one of her shoulders as the commander called for her attention mutely. Their eyes connected and Marie was not at all reassured by the open worry she could depict flashing through the woman’s green eyes before she could have masked the emotion.

“We will move forward in a few moments” Lexa said, bending down slightly to get closer to the child while she left her hand on her shoulder; she could not initiate any closer physical contact at the moment, so this brief and innocent contact would have to do, although she wished for nothing more than to pull the girl into a strong envelope and only let go of her again once the war was over and won and she could be certain that no harm would befall the girl. “Remember that you are to stay close to me, Anya and Ontari. Once we reach the middle of the field, you will remain with Indra and her unit until we return” her green eyes bore down at the girl intently; there was no time any longer to argue with the child and she had to trust that Marie would not try something as stupid as following them on her own.

Marie nodded begrudgingly. Everything within her mind was screaming in protest, the prospect of being separated from the three of them in the middle of the battle field was anything than appealing. A small part of her mind recognized that the chances of her having to see the queen ever again were much slimmer that way, but she was not convinced any longer that this clear advantage was strong enough to outweigh her fear that something would happen to either of them during their time of separation.

Lexa squeezed the girl’s shoulder, holding her gaze for a long moment, until the war drums changed their rhythm again, signalling that the path was free to move ahead for the rest of the army. She let go of Marie and took out her swords again - the blades were already crusted in blood of the warriors she had slain – tightening her grip around the handles and nodding to the generals to move ahead.

Marie inhaled one big shuddering breath, trying to force all of her fears of what could go wrong or what plans the queen could have thought of which would still lead to the army’s downfall from her mind, refocusing all of her attention on the way ahead. The familiar feeling of the small swords resting in her hands now calmed her somehow and she closed up to Anya and Ontari after a moment again, having been told to fight between the two of them.

~ ~ ~

The sight which was clear after the narrower path, made Marie stop for the blink of a second and her eyes quickly took in the fortress ahead of them.

The structure was somehow bigger than she had imagined and it did not compare at all to the fortress which she had inhabited during her time with the queen. Back then the fortress had been built on a free space out of big black rocks. This fortress almost appeared to have been carved into the icy mountain looming behind it and although it surely had a certain beauty to it, Marie’s mind registered all the sharp and glistening ice tips which appeared to almost grow out of the fortress.

She was slightly taken aback by the sheer number of warriors which were ready to fight all around her. Marie had assumed that the queen’s army would have been rather small, but she could barely make out a single free spot in front of the fortress.

The queen’s army was obviously still waiting for their order to charge ahead and only a few single warriors painted with the Ice Nation war paint had already engaged in fighting against warriors from the commander’s army and they were falling quickly.

It seemed as if Lexa’s appearance had been the sign for which the queen’s army had been waiting and Marie startled strongly when all of the opposing warriors let out loud war cries at the same time.

Marie tightened her grip around her swords and she felt Anya and Ontari moving a little closer to her, probably intent on keeping her from harm as much as possible.

The war drums off their own army stopped in reaction, to only beat three more short times; their own signal to attack and Marie joined in the war cries as well now.

~ ~ ~

Anya realized quickly that Nia must have ordered the most trusted of her warriors to only directly attack the commander. It became apparent only a short moments after the real fighting began that a group of around ten to fifteen warriors were only clearing a path in their direction and they were making their way with a worrying speed.

The loud bangs of the shots from the Skykru weapons froze some of the Ice Nation warriors; they had obviously not expected for the new clan to be allowed to use their own weapons or rather for the commander to allow such.

“They are only moving into our direction” she pointed out to Lexa, barely looking at her former second. She was occupied enough with keeping part of her attention on Marie while also taking down whichever warrior managed to get too close to them.

Lexa nodded with a grim expression as she had already recognized the same. She motioned Ryder closer, quickly ordering the guard to signal to the Skykru that this group had priority to take down for now. It would only take a few more moments for them to break through the line of her own army and to reach them.

Anya shoved Marie slightly behind herself when the group of Ice Nation elite warriors broke through even before they were in the range for the Skykru shooters to take down.

The elite warriors fought with unbridled ferocity, almost mowing all of their opponents down, while sustaining almost no losses themselves. It was clear that they had a goal in mind and they would either achieve it or gladly die trying.

Anya noticed Ontari stepping in front of Marie as well when the first of the warriors was almost within reach; they obviously agreed internally on the fact that Marie would not be able to hold up against on these elite warriors.

Anya gritted her teeth and her lips were pulled back into an angry snarl when she felt the biting pain of a cold steel blade imbedding itself into her side moments later; she had already taken down two of these warriors, but the third one had used a little slip in her guard. She had noticed Marie stepping closer seconds before and in her attempt to shield the child, she had left her own side only weakly protected.

Anya cussed under her breath, trying to blind out the pain from the hit. She ripped her sword out of the corpse of the warrior who had wounded her and she blinked her eyes for a moment. It appeared suspiciously as if the world was beginning to spin in front of her eyes. Her cussing turned louder when she brought her hand to her side shortly and it came back coated in way too much blood to be considered healthy. She could already feel her legs losing their strength and she pressed down on the heavily bleeding wound strongly. When she felt her flesh giving way under her pressure slightly, Anya bit her lips strongly at the blinding pain.

~ ~ ~

Marie’s eyes widened in fright when she noticed Anya faltering in front of her. It seemed as if the time had turned to slow motion again. She had seen the gleam of the blade of the Ice Nation warrior before it had been embedded into Anya’s side. The man was dead now, but Anya was clearly swaying on her feet.

Without further thought, Marie closed up to Anya; there was no other warrior directly in front of them. Ontari was still fighting with another one, spinning under his guard and ramming her sword directly through the man’s throat.

Marie briefly hoped that no one would watch her too closely now, but she could also not really care about that now. She directly placed her hands above Anya’s and it took her only a second to activate her powers.

She held Anya’s gaze for only a brief second, before her head whirled around and her breath stuck in her throat for a moment. Ryder had been taken out by the elite warriors already and Gustus seemed to barely be holding himself up any longer. But two warriors had surpassed the burly guard and directly charged at Lexa. While Lexa was able to deflect the first sword easily, the second one pierced through her abdomen with a sickening sound.

Marie immediately let go of Anya and she neared Lexa with fast strides, hoping that none of the warriors would actually bother to attack her; she had even let her sword fall to the ground. She tried to force her feet to move quicker over the icy ground, when Lexa fell to her knees.

The man who was towering over the commander had a satisfied smirk on his face, which was quickly erased when Anya’s sword suddenly protruded from his chest. He had only had eyes for the dying commander in front of him, leaving himself completely unprotected.

Marie fell to her knees directly next to Lexa and her hands immediately pressed on both sides of the bleeding wounds. She had no idea how fast she needed to heal someone or how close to death she would still be able to save someone and she felt tears clouding her eyes at the brief thought of being too slow to heal Lexa. She breathed out in relief when she felt her power activate and she sobbed out a watery laugh when Lexa looked at her a second later. The wounds had healed completely and the commander could stand up again, unharmed.

Marie’s laugh died, when she felt blood running from her nose and she blinked at Lexa in alarm when her vision began to swim in front of her eyes. She tried to reach out to Lexa or Anya, when suddenly all fell black around her.

 

 

Chapter 230

Lexa made a quick leap forward at the sight of Marie suddenly beginning to drop. She reached the girl just in time to catch her limp body, before she could fall to the ground. She felt her heart beating frantically in her throat in fright, as she adjusted her grip on the girl’s body, so that she could look at her face again.

Anya suddenly crouched down next to her and the older woman had already removed the gloves from her hand, reaching out carefully and righting Marie’s head. The amount of blood smeared on the child’s unhealthily pale features was alarming and Lexa was not sure if all the blood truly only originated from her nose.

With slightly shaking fingers Anya trailed one hand to the girl’s neck, holding her breath in anticipation and desperately searching for a pulse, for any sign really that their daughter was still alive.

It had happened all so quickly that Anya’s mind was still trying to somehow make sense of what had happened. Thanks to Marie’s healing of the deep gash on her side, Anya felt energized and refreshed, but her heart had missed a beat at watching Lexa’s body being impaled by her opponent’s sword. Marie must have reached Lexa in time to stop the commander from bleeding out and the younger woman seemed unharmed again.

“Is she alive?” Lexa asked, holding onto Marie still and her voice shook noticeably. She did not know what she would do if the answer was positive. All around them the fighting was continuing as if nothing had transpired at all and yet, the mere possibility of Marie dying felt to Lexa as if the world had suddenly stopped spinning.

One of Anya’s hands continued to search for a pulse on the child’s neck, while she held her other hand directly in front of her nose, trying to sense if Marie was still breathing and Anya felt her whole body tense in anticipation the longer she needed to spot signs of survival from the girl. Her own breathing was slowly becoming erratic and could feel unshed tears burn in her eyes, when she suddenly felt a pulse.

Anya blew out a heavy breath as the anticipation melted from her frame “She is alive” she answered and despite the fighting continuing around them, her lips tilted upwards lightly into the hint of a relieved smile.

Lexa swallowed harshly, meeting her previous mentor’s smile with one of her own. But it only took her senses a further moment to realize that now was not the time, they had a war to fight after all. It worried her that Marie was still unconscious, but it would have to do for now to know that the child was still alive. She was by no means trained in the art of healing, so she could not help the child.

Her green eyes shortly flicked upwards, when she noticed Gustus’ shadow looming above her. The burly man was visibly trying to contain a pained grimace and Lexa immediately spotted several tears in his armour. She had also noticed that Ryder had fallen and it was obvious that the man was not just wounded but had already perished to his wounds.

Lexa could see Roan approaching them, being accompanied by the four guards which had been assigned to him. She closed her eyes for a brief second, squeezing the child’s body once, before she let go of Marie completely, coming to her feet again. It did not appear as if anyone had truly noticed Marie’s talent and she just now realized that Anya had been observant enough to kick snow over the sword which had been impaled into her own body; the black blood would have shown without any doubt that she had been the one wounded severely.

Anya hoisted Marie’s limp body up into her arms, not wanting to leave the girl on the icy ground for a moment too long. It was obvious what needed to happen now without further words. Anya’s mind screamed to carry the girl to the healers herself, but another part was gleefully waiting for her chance to face Nia.

Reluctantly Anya handed over Marie’s unconscious form to Gustus, another pair of warriors were already waiting to escort them back through the narrower path and to the healers’ tents. She held Gustus’ exhausted gaze for long moments, before she truly let go of Marie completely. She knew without doubt that the man would not let the child get harmed as long as he drew breath. She still watched the man slowly making his way from the battlefield and she had to force herself to remain within her place.

Lexa’s expression had already been carefully blanked when Anya turned back around. It seemed as if the commander had just been waiting for her attention to give the signal for the group to leave the actual fighting. Anya felt a slight surge of worry at placing their trust like that with the prince of Ice Nation. The man could very well be leading them into a trap and although Anya knew that the man had been put under guard for the last months which had only been increased tenfold since the blockade had been put into place, she knew that there were always options left on how to smuggle a letter to someone, so they could not rule out that the prince had still somehow managed to keep in contact with his mother. His wish to take out the woman had seemed genuine, but Anya was reluctant to accept his words for the truth; she had learned many times that it always payed off to be exceptionally distrustful.

Anya closed up to Roan with a few quick strides and her tone carried more than just a concealed threat “If I even sense the possibility of a trap…” she let her words trail off, glaring at the man distrustfully.

Roan rolled his eyes at the general’s antics. It was annoying him slightly that the Trikru woman was still so blatantly distrustful towards him, he had had more than enough chances to cause harm to their second and yet he had actually protected the girl from Echo’s interest. He had obviously not succeeded as well as he had hoped, he had heard later that the spy had been the one to bring Marie to his mother. He was not a fool, his mother would never leave the throne willingly before she died and he had spent too much time away from their lands already, his mother would surely not even recognize him as a suitable successor any longer. He was also still convinced that his mother was a fool for wanting to tear apart the coalition, he had seen with his own eyes that it was improving the lives for the clans. He had in fact been contacted by his mother quiet a few times, but he had dutifully handed over each and every letter since he had decided to work with the commander against his mother.

He continued to meet the general’s clearly angry gaze unfaced for long moments until the commander clearing her throat quiet loudly, broke their staring contest.

Lexa’s lips thinned at her former mentor in clear displeasure; they had already argued back and forth at numerous times about the prince’s motives and had only come to the conclusion that their own opinions did not overlap at all in this matter. As the commander Lexa had the final say in the decision on whether to trust Roan or not and she had been sure that she had already made it more than clear to Anya that she in fact did trust the man for now. She knew that her trust could be wrongly placed, she would be a fool not to expect that the man’s loyalty could waver at any moment.

Anya averted her eyes in obvious defeat, but her hand still tightened around the pommel of her sword. Even if the man did not directly lead them into a trap, the prince could not possibly know how many guards would still be within the fortress to protect their queen. Right now, they could only hope that the moment of surprise would gain them the upper hand quickly.

Roan lead them towards the fortress with sure steps, while the unit Anya had trained circled around the small group which would accompany them inside of the fortress, disposing of all the Ice Nation warriors which attempted to stop them.

Right before the main entrance came into a clear view the man side-tracked and lead them along a wall. Although it was not visible from the outside, there was a narrow crack in the sturdy wall of the fortress, well concealed by huge rocks and ice spikes.

“I have used this path to get out as a child” Roan informed the commander, walking next to the woman with quick purposeful strides. He put away his sword with an almost apologetic expression “It will be a tight squeeze” he added. He remembered slipping away to play with some of the guards’ children on numerous occasions, but he had been much younger and smaller and even back then the way had been narrow and he had to navigate quickly. It only came back to him now that he had always had to cover some of the way with bend knees, because the heights of the tunnel had not even allowed for a child to walk straight. He grimaced slightly at the realization that they now would surely have to cover some way crawling on their hands and knees. But he knew that the tunnel led to a part of the fortress which was rarely guarded, the halls of the fortress had been constructed like a complex maze with a little courtyard as the centre and the tunnel would lead them there.

Lexa narrowed her eyes at the man, but inclined her head in acknowledgement, taking up the offer of his short cut was their best shot at reaching Nia before they had to erase the complete army of Ice Nation.

Anya’s annoyance at the whole situation was almost palpable and the general stared hard and long at the prince telling them a moment later that the tunnel would be too small to walk through.

Roan proceeded the group, followed by three warriors, Anya and Lexa and three more warriors in the rear together with Ontari. His estimation of the heights of the tunnel had been relatively accurate and it took them long torturous moments to crawl through the tunnel until light became visible again, forecasting the opening towards the courtyard.

Roan let his eyes trail around the courtyard for a moment, waiting for the rest of the group to close up to him. He lightly brushed off some dirt from his clothes. He had spent long hours at this courtyard, his teachers had rarely searched for him here and for the eyes of a child, the courtyard offered a lot of entertainment. He had spent long time to climb around the rough walls, which were uneven enough to allow easy climbing.

Lexa let her hands fall from her swords, once she could stand up fully again, taking in their surroundings with quick eyes. She frowned slightly, the prince had been correct, there were absolutely no Ice Nation warriors in sight.

“Have you been here before?” Anya turned around to Ontari slightly, offering a hand to the nightblood girl to pull her back to her feet.

Ontari shook her head in the negative. She had only been within this fortress a couple of short stays and she had spent most of the time in Nia’s immediate presence. She had rarely been allowed to roam around freely. If she had not been trained by the royal guard, she had been with the queen.

“My mother will most likely be within her quarters” Roan proclaimed with a thoughtful expression “The throne room would be impractical to hold and her quarters have another shortcut out of the fortress and into the mountains behind it. The way would be hard to cover, but she would surely rather flee than concede defeat”.

Lexa inclined her head in acknowledgment. She would expect nothing less, Nia had yet to outright confront her in a single conflict. But this also meant that as soon as they encountered one of Nia’s guards, they needed to move forward as quick as possible before the woman could decide to flee. The prospect of having to hunt the queen down was less than appealing and a rather big part of her mind wished to return to Marie’s side as soon as possible as well. She was unable to completely ban the worry for the child from her mind.

Ontari’s attention perked up as well, she knew the way toward Nia’s quarters well enough and she was fairly certain that she knew the guards’ rotation better than Roan would. She approached the general, quickly telling the woman that her knowledge could come in hand now. She gave the woman the hint of a smile, when Anya nodded in acknowledgement, agreeing that her input was valued and needed now.

The way through the halls of the fortress were confusing and Lexa quickly realized that they probably would have never reached Nia in time. The queen would have surely been forewarned of the defeat of her army, if they had had to fight their way to the main entrance, which would have given her more than enough time to leave the fortress. Long before they could have spotted the queen in this maze of halls.

It did not take them too long to encounter the first member of the royal guard. But the moment of surprise was on their side and the warrior was killed before he had truly realized that the fortress had been breached at all.

~ ~ ~

“Only a little further” Ontari called over her shoulder, voice low and spoken through clenched teeth. In the last minutes they had encountered more and more members of the royal guard. It was obvious that the frequency of the guards was increasing as closer as they came to Nia’s quarters. She knew that the door to the quarters was only around the very next corner and she felt a calm kind of anticipation settle into her mind. Months ago, she would have been one of those warriors being slain in the halls, trying to protect her queen. Now, she was almost leading the attack against the woman who had practically raised her.

Doubt hotly flashed through her mind, but Ontari squashed down on it relentlessly. Remembering all the times the woman had raised a hand against her in anger, enforcing a lesson with even more physical violence and she felt cold anger rise in her mind. Nia had robbed her of her childhood, tried to groom her to become the next commander. She had once believed that the queen truly wished for her to rule, but she had realized by now that she had been a fool to ever believe such. In truth it would have been Nia who would have ruled the clans. She would have only sat on the throne as a symbol and Nia’s loyal puppet. Snippets of fresher memories replaced her darker memories quickly. Of Anya taking care of her during her time of injury and quiet a number of little memories linked together with Marie.

Her thoughts halted abruptly altogether, when she heard an angry snarl fall from Anya’s lips and it almost sounded as if the general was rumbling a growl from deep within her chest. She looked over her shoulder for a second and was almost taken aback by the pure hate and rage broadcasted openly on the general’s sharp features.

Ontari’s eyes widened in recognition for a second when her eyes fell onto Echo standing in the hallway opposite of them. It was as if time had stopped for a short moment as the general and the Ice Nation spy faced off with each other.

Echo had previously raised her long sword, ready to attack whoever she had heard approaching. But the woman visibly froze and faltered at who she was facing now.

Ontari was convinced that the guilt she had seen flashing over the older woman’s face had even been genuine. She was certain that the spy had only recognized later to exactly what fate she had delivered Marie into.

Anya felt her rage bubble tenfold at being confronted with Echo. She had trusted the woman and allowed the spy to remain within the capitol and trained her singlehandedly within her own unit. Her trust had been thanked by Marie’s abduction and she was certainly in the right to seek avenge on behalf of her daughter, just like Lexa would want to as well.

She carelessly let her own swords drop, the spy did not deserve the quick absolution of death through a few blows only. She charged ahead at the Ice Nation woman, knocking off her sword with practised ease. Anya barely realized that the blade of the sword had grazed along her left arm, which she had used to deflect the sword. She ripped the pommel of the sword from the other woman’s hand and it seemed as if Echo was completely unprepared to react to her untamed rage.

Anya easily pushed the woman against the opposite wall, catching her before she could fall from the rather harsh impact.

Echo’s survival instincts had obviously kicked in and the woman was trying to pry the general’s hands from her body, kicking out at her almost blindly.

Anya did not even react to the kicks at all, the pain was not even registering into her mind through her thirst for avenge. She turned the other woman’s hands around harshly, not minding the loud cracking sounds as she crushed Echo’s wrists against the walls.

Echo let out a grunt of pain just as Anya raised her fist and with all her might began to land punch after punch directly into the spy’s face. Her head kept on bouncing off against the wall, but Anya was blind to the fact how Echo’s body grew lax in her grip and how her face was turning into a bloody mess and how her own knuckles were scrapped raw and bloody. Her mind kept on supplying images of Marie after her return to the capitol and how the girl had had several break downs after regaining her memories. If Echo had only followed her orders and helped in the actual search of Marie and handed the child back over into her care, nothing would have happened to their daughter beside her amnesia, but they would have been much easier able to handle this without the added trauma of her time with Nia.

Ontari watched the general take out her obviously enormous rage onto Echo and she had to swallow slightly. If there would have been a single sliver of doubt left within her mind of just how protective the general was on Marie, it would have been erased now. She was slightly taken aback by the pure unaltered violence of the woman’s attack and she would remind never to push the Trikru woman too far.

Lexa did not stop Anya from killing Echo with her bare hands. She stood back for long moments in silence, feeling a small surge of satisfaction at watching the woman’s death. But the rational part of her mind knew that they needed to keep moving. Anya’s outburst was causing too much noises and they still had their actual target to take down. She could not allow Anya to fare with Nia in such a fashion, although everything within her mind longed to even aid her former mentor in singlehandedly tearing the queen to shreds. She stepped closer to the general, placing a hand onto her back lightly “She is dead” she assessed in a firm tone, calling Anya’s attention from Echo’s lifeless body.

Anya blinked once, letting go of Echo’s body abruptly and the corpse slid to the ground of the hall. She cracked her hands once, realigning her abused knuckles and her brown eyes still burned with hatred as she fully faced the commander “Let us avenge our daughter then” she said, her words only addressing the commander, spoken too low for the others to understand.

Lexa nodded with a grim expression, she could barely wait to finally see the woman fall.

 

 

 

 

 

 

Chapter 24: Chapter 231 - 240

Chapter Text

Chapter 231

Anya barely felt the burn within her fingers when she accepted her sword back from Ontari, who had picked the discarded weapon up, and let them close tightly around the handle. But she still noticed the blood running through her fingers, where her skin had burst open, so she knew that her fingers would be stiff and swollen later, once the adrenaline from the battle had left her system. Now she still felt the prospect of getting revenge on their daughter’s behalf coursing hotly through her veins.

“The secret exit is hidden behind a moveable bookshelf” Roan spoke up, keeping his tone low, while his eyes remained hefted on the door looming in front of them. The main part of his mind knew that he had made the right choice in working together with the commander, but a small voice within his mind kept on whispering insistently that he was betraying his own mother. Their relationship had not always been difficult, he still remembered earlier days of his childhood. But he tried to silence the bugging little voice, when the deeply frightened grey eyes of the commander’s second invaded his mind, reminding him viciously of just what his mother was capable of. “Keep her away from it entirely” he cautioned. He knew that there were booby traps within this secret passage as well, which could be activated from the person entering and keeping whoever might try to follow away.

The other warriors nodded in acknowledgement, hands closing around their drawn weapons, ready to spring into attack any second now.

Lexa halted them for a single moment “Capture her alive if possible” was her last order.

Anya’s brows furrowed; she was less than impressed with this order. Everything within her longed to storm inside this room and do to Nia what she had just done to Echo, maybe just letting the vile woman die slower and more painfully, just as she deserved. But her rational mind knew that it would be most politically effective to bring the Ice queen back to Polis and to subject under the judge of the coalition and the commander, holding a public execution for the queen.

The warriors nodded again in mute acknowledgement, although they had received the same order before already.

Roan stepped closer to the door and he did not hesitate for a single second in reaching out and turning the handle, slowly pushing the door open. His eyes directly fell onto his mother in person. The woman was obviously hastily trying to pack a few things and her eyes visibly widened when she recognized him. “Hello mother” he addressed her in a monotonous voice and his features were taken over by a blank mask “Long time no see” he commented sarcastically. His body was still blocking the sight out into the hall, so his mother had obviously not realized yet that he had not arrived alone.

Nia’s brows visibly furrowed “Roan…” she retorted and the surprise flitting over her features seemed genuine “…how have you come here?” she asked as suspicion entered her eyes.

“I have made my own deal, mother” Roan commented in a cold tone. He had hoped to see at least a little joy within his mother’s eyes to be reunited with him, if only for a brief second, his conscience felt slightly lighter at finding only suspicion. He stepped into the room, quickly crossing through it and directly coming to stand in front of the bookshelf which he knew was hiding the secret escape passage.

It was almost comical to watch Nia’s features morph from surprised suspicion, through a deep sense of betrayal and finally settling on pure hate as her eyes fell onto the commander. Shock had flitted over her hard face momentarily, as she threw an accusative glare into the direction of her son. Her glare only intensified once she fully noticed Ontari standing behind Anya and her eyes flitted between the nightblood girl and the general for long moments, taking in the way their bodies stood slightly angled towards each other, clearly indicating that the two must share a personal connection of some sorts.

“Not just betrayed by my own flesh and blood but by my ward as well” the queen sneered, hatred dripping from her tone and her eyes burned with her internal rage. It was obvious that the queen had definitely not expected this turn of events to even be possible and the gears in her head were apparently turning in high speed, grasping at anything to turn the proceedings around into her favour somehow.

Lexa’s face was covered by her stoic mask of the commander, only her green eyes betrayed the whirlwind of emotion raging through her mind. In all honesty, she was a little disappointed that the queen had not tried to put up a fight yet. But she guessed that even the queen must be aware that there was nothing much she could do being faced with ten opponents. “Queen Nia of Azgeda, you are hereby dethroned and will subject yourself to the judgement of the coalition” she proclaimed in a tightly controlled voice. She knew all too well that Nia would pounce relentlessly on any kind of weakness she would find now.

Nia laughed bitterly “Judgment for what?” she asked mockingly, brows raised in the exaggerated parody of a confused expression.

Lexa’s lips thinned and she took in a deep breath, trying to reign in her temper. She knew that Nia was only trying to get a rise out of her and she would not give this excuse of a woman the satisfaction of that. Flashes of memories of Marie made her attempts all that harder. She would forever have the images ingrained within her mind of the child disrobing reluctantly on the first day back in Polis still confined into the dungeons, of just how many scars had littered the girl’s skin. “You will be read your charges in Polis” she answered in a flat tone, grinding her teeth together in internally rising impatience. Standing within the same room as the queen, was putting her on edge and she felt every last nerve within her body being stretched thin.

“Certainly not” Nia retorted with determination gleaming within her eyes and with surprising speed and ferocity, she charged at the two warriors standing closest to her, slashing at them relentlessly.

Anya’s eyes gleamed with satisfaction at seeing the queen put up a fight. It was a useless fight, but that way she would at least have the excuse to hurt the vile woman, if only a little. Her eyes widened a little when she noticed that the queen was trying to make a beeline towards her own son, a murderous glint within her eyes and an almost crazed expression marred her features.

She tightened the grip around her sword, aware that the prince had only been given a single dagger and nothing else to defend himself with. She knew already that the man was a well-trained fighter, so he could probably take care of his mother just with this weapon, but she did not wish to take any chances. Chaos would overtake Ice Nation in case of Roan’s death, as he was the last living real successor to his mother.

Anya had to acknowledge that the queen was obviously a very well-versed fighter in her own rights, she had already taken out three of their warriors without sustaining more than a mere scratch herself. She kept her own guard high and unbreachable, aware that Marie would not be able to heal her now, in case of a fatal injury and she had vowed to herself to never leave the girl again, so dying now was simply not an option.

The queen’s blows had more force than Anya expected and she barely managed to avoid one of her curved daggers from piercing her side. Ontari had followed in her steps and shadowed her, Anya was internally slightly surprised that the nightblood girl was obviously intending to support her physically.

Together, they were able to devest Nia of her weapons short moments later, while Lexa had hovered slightly behind the scene, ready to jump in if necessary. But the commander had been hesitant to truly get involved in the fight, if the queen could not take out her son, she was sure that her ire would have befallen herself and their daughter and her people needed her alive.

The self-righteous smirk had long fallen from Nia’s features and the woman was visibly fuming internally, as two warriors forced manacles around her wrist, connecting them with heavy chains, which were a little weathered down by rust, but still sturdy.

Lexa felt something within herself loosen and an old weight lifted from her heart at seeing the queen in shekels; there was absolutely no way the woman could excuse her charges now which would end with anything but her execution.

“You will regret that" the queen seethed in the direction of both her son and Ontari likewise, her eyes glaring daggers at them, filled with pure hatred.

Roan seemed unfazed by his mother’s ire, he had expected nothing else and for once he was in the superior position. He knew that he would need to establish his power position among his people first and he was well aware that there would be loyalists to his mother as queen who would not he impressed by him taking up the throne. His strength would surely be questioned as well because he had used the power of the commander to seize the throne for himself. But he would make sure that all of Azgeda would stand behind the commander and the coalition. His people would recognize sooner or later that the coalition was a good thing for them in the end, even if he had to execute all of his mother’s loyalists, then he would do so. He nodded towards the commander, he would only become king now because of her, he knew that and he would be in her debt from now on.

Anya personally took over the chain binding Nia’s wrist together, taking great pleasure in being able to pull the woman behind herself roughly. She internally rejoiced at the woman stumbling behind her, as she pulled her through the halls with quick strides.

Lexa and Roan proceeded the group and the soon to be king of Ice Nation loudly proclaimed ahead to all of now his own warriors to stand down.

It was obvious that the Ice Nation warriors were divided in their reaction. Some readily lowered their weapons, bowing lightly towards their new leader and acknowledging the commander beside him. The other half kept their weapons drawn and ready, either only lowering them again with obvious reluctance or refusing to surrender completely, choosing to attack and die instead.

The way through the fortress passed in relative silence. Ontari walked close to Anya and the bound Nia, keeping a dagger in hand for the improbable chance that the queen managed to get free somehow.

Anya barely batted an eye when Nia stumbled and fell to her knees at a sharp turn. She gave the women a short moment to get back up, more like a second than an actual moment, before she tugged hard at the chains, pulling the bound woman behind herself with force.

Lexa let Anya be for a few moments, but rolled her eyes slightly, stopping the group for a moment, when the main entrance came into view.

Nia immediately began spewing more empty threats, ordering the rest of her warriors which were still in earshot to get to work in eliminating the traitors and the commander.

Lexa’s lips thinned and her tone was hard and cold when she proclaimed “Gag her, I am tired of listening to her voice".

Ontari obliged immediately, actually ripping a piece of the shirt she wore under her coat and stuffing it into Nia’s mouth without any hesitation. She smirked at the woman who had once been her tormentor, convinced of actually having chosen the right side.

Once they stepped out of the fortress, the fighting almost immediately seemed to cease once the warriors realized that their queen was being led outside in chains, those who were still visibly hesitating, were convinced easily.

“I will be king from now on" Roan shouted loudly, his voice carried easily over the vast field “Ice Nation surrenders, so stand down" he added after a moment and he went as far as bending his knee in front of the commander to solidify his allegiance to the coalition.

Lexa left the man kneeling for a moment, before she inclined her head “Long live the king!” she shouted loudly.

Silence settled over the field for a moment, until even the last soldier of the Ice Nation troops had let their weapons drop and the forces of the coalition broke out into cheerful shouts of victory.

The Azgeda warriors were visibly nervous, probably awaiting retaliation from the commander.

The atmosphere only got lighter when Lexa stretched out her hand, offering it to Roan and helped the man back to his feet.

Roan and a delegation from Ice Nation would accompany the army back to Polis. He would be crowned by the commander in a ceremony in the capitol, that way it would remain clear that Lexa was the reason that Roan was actually sitting on the throne and the clan's loyalty would be bound firmly to the coalition as well for the foreseeable future.

It would take some time to gather the wounded and let the healers take care of them. They would also not bring those who had fallen back to the capitol, so they needed to construct pyres for those as well.

Lexa longed to leave the battlefield as soon as possible, checking on Marie herself immediately. She had not been able to quiet the little voice within her mind nagging constantly that the child had suffered another aneurysm. They were much too far away from Skykru to have Abby help Marie now.

Anya handed over Nia to her own unit, the order to keep the woman from escaping was clear without actually having to be spoken out loud.

On the way from the battlefield Anya checked with Ontari if the nightblood girl had gotten hurt at all. She had not seen the girl showing any signs of an injury, but she had made it clear that she wished to know of minor injuries as well.

“Nothing more than a graze" Ontari answered truthfully. She had taken a hit to one of her thighs, but she barely felt the injury, so it could not have been deep at all.

Anya nodded in acknowledgment “Have it cleaned out and bandaged" even a slight graze could catch an infection after all and during a journey the likelihood for this to happen was even higher. She stopped Ontari for a moment, before the girl could enter the tent of the healers reserved for those who had only sustained slight injuries. She held the girl’s inquiring gaze for a moment, letting warmth and a hint of pride infuse into her eyes “You did well" she complimented the girl in an honest tone.

Ontari’s lips ghosted upwards into a smile and she felt a warm unfamiliar feeling settle into the pit of her stomach. The general had not really complimented her on anything outright so far and she knew how hard earned was even the slightest appreciative nod from the stoic woman. She had not even been truly aware of the fact that she was longing to earn the woman’s approval, but the happiness she felt bubbling in her mind, was proof enough of that. Ontari could not remember a single occurrence where Nia had complemented her on anything, the woman had only pointed out her shortcomings, not being punished had been her only way of knowing that she had not failed the woman’s expectations yet again. She had observed Anya showing her appreciation to Marie for even the smallest things and she had tried not to feel jealous of the younger girl. She truly had not been actually jealous, but still a part of her mind had wondered if she might just not be deserving of acknowledgment like that. So, even hearing such little words, meant the world to her now and Ontari’s steps were lighter when she entered the tent. The worry for the younger girl lingered in her mind still, but in the chaos of the battle she had not really noticed what had even happened.

~ ~ ~

Anya swiftly turned around after leaving Ontari at the smallest of the healers' tents, walking over towards the tent which had been erected for the commander, being convinced that she would find Marie there.

The relief of the war being won relatively uncomplicated - of course there had been losses, but they had found Nia within the first fortress and the losses had been minimal – paled within her mind as her steps carried her closer to their daughter.

Internally Anya feared what she might find inside. Her mind kept on replaying what had transpired in the medical bay of the Ark long months ago.

Anya quickened her step, whatever was waiting inside the tent, she would be at Marie’s side now.

Lexa had been held up by the generals, having to organize the construction of the pyres, speaking with Roan about the specifics of what was expected of him now as well. The commander wished for nothing more than to accompany Anya to Marie’s side and her mood was snappy at best now, her patience thinning with every moment.

Anya opened the tent flaps without hesitation, stepping inside quickly. She frowned for a moment, stopping in her steps, when she spotted Clarke and Raven standing beside the bed. She knew that the brunette was not a healer and she was not sure that she liked Clarke’s presence around Marie, but she had to acknowledge that the blonde woman was probably best equipped to help the child.

She spotted Gustus sitting on one of the chairs and the simple fact that burly man was not standing but indeed sitting, already conveyed enough about his health. Anya saw more than one bandage peeking through his clothing and his features were marred with exhaustion and pain.

When he noticed her, the man glanced up, dark eyes flashing with relief without Anya actually having to spell out that the war was over.  

Clarke looked over immediately at the general’s appearance and the worry within her features was visible in the drawn lines. She seemed to expect Lexa to enter immediately as well and the disappointment at not finding the commander was almost palpable. “What happened?” she asked, voice tinted with worry.

Anya did not pay any attention to the blonde healer really, stepping around the two younger women quickly and bending over the bed. She felt her heart grow heavier at seeing Marie lying pale and still on the bed. A small part of her mind had kept on hoping that the child would have already recovered by the time of their return and she felt her worry and fear grow at finding her condition unchanged. She bent down further over the bed, caressing the girl’s face with gentle fingers for a moment before she pressed a light kiss to Marie’s forehead “Wake up, my little star" she whispered into her ear, hoping against all common sense that the girl would somehow hear her plea and wake up sooner.

“The war is over” she said bluntly, turning inquiring eyes to the younger blonde woman, she was more interested into what was wrong with Marie than anything else now. Anya grasped onto one of the child’s limp hands, keeping up the physical contact to her.

Clarke let out a shuddering breath. More questions burned on the tip of her tongue, but she knew that the general would not offer any more answers now. “I do not know what is wrong with her" she answered truthfully. She had examined the girl carefully, but beside a few superficial scratches and bruises, she had found absolutely nothing. She did not have any equipment to do deep scans of the girl’s head. Gustus had told her that the bump on the girl’s forehead was a day old and she dearly hoped that Marie had not cracked her skull, but beside the bump she could not detect signs of a too high pressure within her brain. “It is possible that her skull has a crack, but I can’t make any scans here. My mother could do more in the Ark. I have given her a tea against pain and exhaustion, I can assess more once she is awake" she explained.

Anya’s lips thinned; she knew that the way was too far to bring the girl there in time if her condition was critical. She squeezed the child’s hand, praying internally that Marie would wake up on her own soon.

 

Chapter 232

Lexa breathed out a deep sigh when she finally had finished with everything which needed her immediate attention, she knew that other things needed to be organised still, but nothing too pressing which could not be delegated to one of the generals.

So, she quickened her pace in the direction of her tent, her eyes still roamed over the battlefield momentarily. Warriors had already begun to clear the battlefield of their fallen comrades and former opponents alike and rows were constructed with their bodies on a free field. From what she could see so far, the losses had been relatively balanced between both sides. The body number count would have been much higher if they would not have had Roan’s and Ontari’s input and support, which had made the capture of the queen possible in the first place.

Lexa passed by the tent which held Nia on the way to her own and she faltered in her steps for a short moment. Nia’s capture had all in all been much easier than she had anticipated and somehow, she was not as satisfied with the outcome as she had hoped. Costia’s beloved features flashed through her mind for the blink of a second, replaced by the view of finding her head within her bed. She knew that she would never be able to ever forget the sight and the utter feeling of devastation that had filled her whole being at this moment. She had not been able to get avenge on her lover’s behalf back then, having to listen to her rational sense and putting her own heart between what her head and what her people needed, but now she could finally get this avenge. Her thirst for avenge had been fuelled by what Nia had done to their daughter and every fibre of her being longed to step into the small tent and simply kill the vile woman right now. She pushed the longing from her mind and focused on her worry for Marie instead.

As she neared the biggest tent, the guards immediately stepped aside after opening the tent flaps for her. Lexa rushed inside without paying much attention to the interior of the tent, her eyes immediately searching out the bed and spotting Anya who was sitting on the edge holding onto one of Marie’s limp hands. She stepped over to the bed quickly and looked down at the child. Anya’s expression already told her that their daughter had not woken up yet.

No change yet?” she asked towards Anya, although Lexa already knew the answer. She sat down beside the general, her eyes raking over the girl’s too pale features and she felt her heart grow heavy again. They were so close to avenging what had been done to their daughter and seeing the child like this, made Lexa fear for the worse already. Marie had been too close to death too often already to her liking and Lexa dearly wished that the child would wake up soon, hopefully healthy again as well. A tiny part of her mind hoped for a miraculous recovery like the girl had already had in the medical bay of the Ark so many months ago now, while a larger part of her mind supplied the frightened question of what would happen if the girl’s talents did not kick in to save her again. Lexa had no idea about how serious the child’s condition was, she had simply dropped unconscious after healing her, something which had never happened before to her knowledge. Marie had healed both of them on numerous occasions in the past now and the child had never seemed to suffer from any repercussions so far, so Lexa found it rather unlikely that this should have changed all of a sudden.

Anya shook her head in the negative and the grimness of her expression showed the hopelessness the older woman must be feeling quiet plainly to see.

Lexa sighed again, feeling some of her own hope dissipate into fear and emptiness. “Nia will never harm a single hair on your head again, little star, you are safe to wake up again” she bent down over Marie slightly, Anya shuffled a little on the mattress to make some more room for the commander. Lexa took off her gloves, discarding them carelessly on the ground beside the bed and let the tips of her fingers caress over the girl’s features softly, pushing a few unruly hairs from the child’s forehead. She gentled her touch even further more into the whisper of a caress as she let her fingers trail softly over the large bump on Marie’s forehead, afraid to cause the girl additional discomfort.

She wondered if letting the girl ride and march into battle with them, might have been a grave mistake and could have caused Marie’s condition to worsen like that. Lexa did not know much about healing or the specifics of injuries, but she knew enough about injuries to the head that the girl should have been confined to bedrest for a few days at least. She doubted that she would be able to live with the knowledge that her war had harmed their daughter.

Come back to us, little star” she whispered into the girl’s ears, feeling her voice waver as her emotions threatened to break free. In the back of her mind Lexa was still aware that she was not alone with Anya in the tent, so she tried to keep a tight hold onto her composure. She had waited so long for this moment of finally getting revenge on Nia and now Lexa was unable to truly feel any satisfaction from it, the worry for their daughter overshadowed everything else within her mind now. She pressed a light kiss onto the girl’s forehead and she felt her own eyes burn slightly with tears all of a sudden.

Lexa tensed abruptly, when she noticed the weight of an unfamiliar gaze resting on herself and she felt the hairs on her neck rise in anticipation and every sense within her mind told her to get ready to defend their daughter from the possible threat.

She blinked once, expression blanking over in the blink of a second and when she straightened herself and let her hands retract from Marie’s head, her green eyes immediately spotted Clarke and Raven standing beside the bed a little awkwardly. Lexa’s lips thinned in irritation at the sight of the Skykru mechanic. She could easily explain Clarke’s presence within the tent, the Skykru woman was best equipped to deal with head injuries and had already seen Marie in a similar condition. In all honesty, Lexa preferred Clarke to take care of the girl now in comparison to one of their own healers, who would not be able to help Marie at all.  But Raven’s presence irked her the wrong way at the moment. She was sure without having to ask that Clarke would have invited her friend along. None of her own people would even think about entering the commander’s private tent without an official summon or invitation, entering without permission was considered as a severe breach of privacy.

Lexa’s nostrils flared in rising anger when Raven smirked nervously at spotting her negative reaction. “Get out now!” she seethed out through clenched teeth, green eyes burning into Raven’s dark ones for long moments.

The other woman seemed speechless for a moment, but she hurried to obey, when Lexa even moved the slightest bit into her direction. Raven actually more or less fled from the commander’s tent, nearly tripping over her own feet in her haste.

Clarke had watched the exchange with a frown and she was torn between following Raven outside without a word, as she was not convinced that the order had not included herself as well, or staying within the commander’s tent. She had after all been assigned to take care of Marie and as far as they knew, the blonde child could wake up at any moment. She thought that Lexa had reacted a little too strongly to Raven’s presence, but she could understand that the brunette’s nerves would be stretched rather thin at the moment. When she saw how tense Lexa remained even after the tent flaps had fallen close again behind Raven, she sighed under her breath, shoulders slumping slightly in internal defeat. She knew that now was not the time to try to talk to Lexa, they would only end up fighting again if she attempted such now. They both would need to be calm for the conversation which still lingered in her mind, so Clarke resigned herself to wait, just like Lexa had done after she had travelled to Polis with them for the first time.

Clarke began to pack up her supplies, she had also taken care of Gustus’ injuries. The burly man had tried to argue with her nonstop that she was responsible to examine Marie and that his injuries could certainly wait for the time being. But she had reasoned with the man after a quick examination of the blonde child, that there was in fact nothing which she could do at the moment to improve Marie’s condition and that the girl needed to wake up first. The injuries which had been hidden under the remnants of his armour had been much more severely than Clarke would have expected and she wondered how the man had managed to stay upright on his feet for so long. He had insisted that he did not wish for a tea to numb his pain, so she had stitched all of his wounds close without this little aid. She had to acknowledge just how strong the man’s willpower must be as he had not made a single sound through the whole procedure of cleaning, stitching and dressing his numerous deep wounds.

Lexa felt a little of her internal tension drain once Raven had exited the tent, Clarke had already seen her at her worse, so she did not feel as bad at being seen by her now. Her brows creased together in honest confusion when she noticed that Clarke seemed to gather her supplies “You are not dismissed yet” she proclaimed in a harsh tone, still within the mindset of what the role of the commander demanded her to have.

Clarke’s frown deepened as she turned back to the young leader, her gaze quickly flitted over her armour, looking for any tears. She thought to spot a few slight tears, but the woman was not showing any signs of injuries. So, the commander had either only sustained minor wounds, had not been wounded at all or Marie had healed her sometime during the battle already. Although she internally winced at the raised tone, something Lexa had rarely used with her so far, she externally tried to be unfazed by it, aware of just how much stress the woman must have been under during the last weeks.

Lexa’s expression turned slightly apologetic when she noticed the hurt flashing through Clarke’s blue eyes, before the healer had been able to avoid her gaze. She sighed under her breath and her whole posture deflated visibly. She knew that snapping at Clarke would not help in any form. She was thankful that the woman was helping Marie after all. “I want you to stay and take care primarily of Marie” she explained in a noticeably softer tone “You are the best skilled to do so” she added honestly. Lexa looked directly at Clarke and she felt a deep sense of sadness overtake her mind, when she immediately felt the all so familiar connection flare back up between them.

It was obvious that Clarke was feeling it too, judging from the way her blue eyes seemed to grow sad and moist, but the healer refrained from saying anything and only held the commander’s gaze in silence. Clarke nodded in acknowledgement, Lexa would not have needed to try and to appease her with compliments, she would have gladly helped in taking care of Marie just by being asked for it.

“I do not know what exactly could be causing her condition" Clarke explained after a subtle nod, choosing to simply remain professional in her function as a healer now. “I do not have any machines available at hand here to do a deep scan of her head. Her skull could have cracked when she bumped her head" she added in a calm tone.

Lexa’s brows furrowed, feeling her worries confirmed that the continual of the journey could have been cause of Marie losing consciousness in the first place. The colour drained from her features as guilt settled into her mind. She did not know anymore why she had insisted that Marie would be with them, she could have easily left the child with some of her warriors within the village. Marie would have surely been protected enough there and she was blaming herself for not having thought of that option at all. It had not occurred to her as a viable option to leave the child behind, but now she was sure that it should have been.

Anya’s features hardened when she saw the inner turmoil within the young leader. “Leave us for a moment, Clarke" she addressed the younger woman firmly, not giving her much of a choice.

Lexa was too much caught up within her own thoughts to disagree with Anya’s words, so Clarke stepped out of the tent, mumbling lowly that she would return in a few minutes.

“Don’t you dare blame yourself for Marie’s condition" Anya spoke up, barely after the tent flaps had fallen close again. She could read the younger woman well enough without her speaking her mind.

Lexa’s lips thinned in exasperation “What else should I do? There is nothing we can do, beside wait and hope. If I had only...” she retorted, but was interrupted by her general.

Anya stepped closer to Lexa, grasping onto her shoulders and actually giving her a slight shake, like she had done numerous times during the time when she had still been the younger woman’s first “Stop!” she ordered “There is no way of knowing which might have been if things had happened differently. Marie will wake up" her voice was strong with conviction. She could not allow herself to believe otherwise, although there was doubt lingering in her bones, fuelled by the fear that Marie would in fact not wake again.

Lexa sighed under her breath and she held her former mentor's gaze for long moments, before she inclined her head in mute agreement. She sat down on the bed again, taking up on of Marie’s hands and squeezing it softly. Almost automatically, she began to hum the melody of her old lullaby under her breath to the child.

Anya stepped closer to Gustus, the man seemed almost asleep on his seat and she lightly touched his shoulder “You can rest, the tent is guarded” she offered in a kind tone and after a moment of contemplation, the man heaved himself back to his feet and left the tent with a notable sway to his steps. Anya followed him outside, keeping an eye on the man making sure that he would reach a tent to rest without collapsing first.

Her gaze fell on Clarke afterwards, who stood a little of the side to the main entrance to the tent. “We appreciate your help for Marie" she honestly said in an even tone.

Clarke looked up at the general and nodded in acknowledgment “Think nothing of it" she waved off the gratitude easily “I had never intended to hurt her in any way" she added after a moment of silence. Neither Anya nor Lexa had truly given her the time to defend herself after their argument and she just felt the need to make this point clear now.

Anya’s eyes narrowed slightly at the younger woman, searching her eyes for any signs of dishonesty, when she could spot nothing but true honesty, she nodded in acceptance. She would not apologise to Clarke for what had transpired between them in Polis and this was as close to something resembling a reconciliation as they would ever get.

Clarke did not take offence from the lack of an actual response from the general, she knew that the woman was not one for many words and they had never really gotten close to each other. She hoped that Lexa would believe her as well once she got the chance to really speak with the woman in private. But she was fairly certain that she should wait until they had reached Polis and the coalition was fully back under control. Making sure that Marie was getting better would need to take priority now. She was sure that Lexa would be needed to organise quiet a lot still in the upcoming hours and days, so she could offer to remain with the child instead.

Clarke’s internal foreboding became true when the commander was called outside only slightly later, she guessed that only around an hour could have passed. The time had passed in relative silence, she had stayed back and watched Lexa and Anya either speak with each other lowly while holding onto Marie or directly murmuring something to the girl in soft tones.

Lexa left the girl’s side only very reluctantly, lingering in front of the bed, looking down at the unconscious girl for long silent moments. The shouts outside, demanding the commander’s presence grew louder with each passing moment and the irritation in Lexa’s eyes increased, until she could finally tear herself away from the bed.

“I hope for whoever called her, that it was indeed important” Clarke commented lowly, watching the commander storm out of the tent with a slight frown. She was slightly surprised by the chuckle the comment had pulled past Anya’s lips.

“I can stay with here, if you are needed elsewhere" Clarke offered in an honest tone and looked directly at the general.

Anya’s lips thinned slightly at the idea of leaving Marie’s side as well, but she knew that there were quiet a lot of things which needed to be done before they could even think of returning to Polis. So, she placed another kiss lovingly on the girl’s forehead with another whispered plea for the child to wake up and stood from the bed again. She believed that Clarke would remain with Marie and keep a watchful eye over the girl, the tent was well guarded and no one would dare to make a move against the girl now.

She directly looked around to spot Lexa. The young leader was arguing heartedly with a pair of warriors. Anya closed up to them quickly, only catching the end of the discussion “...demand the right to kill her, she has ordered the execution of our whole family for nothing!”

Lexa listened to the demands with barely any patience left and she clenched her jaw tightly. She had more than enough reason to hunger for a personal kind of revenge against Nia as well and yet, the woman was still alive, because her rational mind yet again overpowered her heart. She did not know if there would ever be a time, where this could change either. She would forever remain to be the commander and this usually required from her to put her personal desires last. One question remained burning within her mind though, of why the queen had had to torture Marie in such a fashion. Lexa was not certain that she truly wished to hear the answer either.

Their discussion was cut short, when one of the warriors assigned to guard Nia approached quickly. Lexa firmly dismissed the warriors who had demanded to personally execute Nia with the clear answer that such a thing would not come to pass. The queen would get the public execution within Polis, which she deserved.

“Commander, the queen has injured herself” the young man relayed and the confusion of why the woman would do such a thing was palpable in his features.

Lexa’s brows furrowed and her jaw clenched even tighter as she thought of Nia getting off of her own execution by choosing the easy way out and killing herself first. Anger clouded her mind and it burned hotly in her veins, as she strode towards the small tent, Anya hot on her heels.

The sight which greeted them inside was unexpected to say the least. The small interior of the tent was crowded with people. Two warriors were fixating the queen to the ground, while a healer was applying a bandage to a bleeding gash on her throat.

Lexa’s green eyes burned with hatred at the sight “Fixate her completely if necessary” she proclaimed harshly “If she dies before we reach Polis, so will you!”

The guards visibly swallowed at the threat, knowing it to be true.

Lexa watched the healer take care of the older woman with a heated gaze. She had not thought that Nia would be cowardly enough to kill herself now and by thus rob them of their rightful revenge.

Anya’s thoughts were going in the same direction and she stood at the entrance with angrily balled fists, refraining herself only through pure willpower from storming inside and strangling the woman to death herself.

 

Chapter 233

Clarke watched the general leave the tent in silence. It had been more than obvious that both women had only very begrudgingly left the child’s side. She had known before of just how deeply the love between Marie and the two Trikru women ran, but seeing proof of that connection in such a tragic situation was almost painful. She desperately needed to find a time to explain to Lexa that harming Marie had truly never even crossed her mind.

She looked down at the child, keeping close watch of her features, looking out for even the subtlest of changes. She internally wondered why fate seemed to hold so much darkness for the young girl. Marie had suffered through enough already, not just during their short time on earth, but her childhood had already been marred with loss and misery. Clarke knew from personal experience how devasting her time in solitary confinement had been, but she could not imagine how much crueller the separation and loneliness must have felt to Marie being several years younger. It was no wonder really that the girl was so clingy and seemed to always seek out as much physical warmth as possible now that she again had role models within her life.

Clarke really hoped that Marie would get “the happily ever after” from the story books her father had read to her as a small kid. She was not sure if something like that truly existed in real life and she doubted that she was deserving of one after all those deaths she had caused.

Her thoughts halted abruptly when the tent flaps were opened again and she turned around to the entrance quickly, her hands closing around the dagger she wore strapped to her waist nowadays. She knew that she was not the best fighter, but Clarke had learned that carrying at least one visible weapon was sometimes already enough to dissuade others from attacking at all.

Clarke’s stance relaxed when she recognized the Ice Nation nightblood enter the commander’s tent. She rolled her eyes lightly at the open suspicion flittering over the younger girl’s scarred features.

Ontari narrowed her eyes at the blonde Skykru woman. She had not been told exactly what had transpired between her and the commander. But she of course knew that they had been romantically involved and that they apparently had broken things off in the last days before the war. She had noticed how angry the general had been about whatever fight the two women had had, but she had not cared to question for specifics, she knew that it was not her place after all. But she had had to notice that other healers had taken over the primary care of the commander again, so she was confused to find the Skykru woman again. She had also not truly seen what had happened to Marie, she had assumed that the girl had already been sent to Indra, like Anya had proclaimed previously and had not really thought anything of her absence.

She strode through the tent quickly and was slightly taken aback to see Marie lying within the large bed, buried under a thick layer of furs. Her skin was unhealthily pale and appeared almost clammy. Had the younger girl been wounded after their separation? She wondered internally where the commander and general were, she knew how deeply protective they were of the blonde girl, considering her as their daughter now even, so she would not have expected them to leave Marie under Wanheda’s watch, who had seemed to have lost the commander’s trust.

“What has happened to her?” Ontari asked in a brisk tone, dark eyes glaring lightly at the older girl as she stepped directly up to the bed, coming to stand slightly between the bed and Wanheda. She held the healer’s blue eyes in an intent gaze, wondering for a moment if she might have caused Marie’s condition somehow.

Clarke shrugged slightly “Gustus brought her back. Already unconscious. She apparently lost consciousness all of a sudden. The only visible injure she had, is the bump on her forehead. She had had a nosebleed before falling unconscious, but I do not know why she has lost consciousness in the first place” she answered truthfully. She highly doubted that she needed to tell the nightblood girl anything, but she knew of the friendship between both girls, so it was natural for her to worry. She tried not to react to the open suspicion from her, guessing that Anya would have told her older charge that she was not welcomed within Marie’s vicinity any longer prior to leaving Polis.

Ontari frowned at the information, she had not thought that the bump on the head could be so serious and cause such an apparent problem. Marie’s condition must be at least slightly critical or Wanheda would surely not have been required to keep watch over her. “She has been sick and dizzy yesterday” she mumbled, more to herself than to the young Skykru woman.

Clarke nodded with a sigh, she had already guessed from the sheer size of the bump that Marie had suffered from a serious concussion, she must have hit her head really strong to cause that. The constant jostlement of the journey on horseback could surely not have been good for the girl’s health as well. It was theoretically possible that the girl’s unconsciousness now was a result of a severer concussion, but that would certainly be shown once she woke up again.

Ontari held the other woman’s gaze for a moment longer, until she turned around slightly, sitting down on the edge of the bed. She hesitantly reached out for one of Marie’s smaller hands, squeezing it lightly and settled herself a little more comfortably. She would take over watch until the commander or the general would return to their tent later.

Clarke rolled her eyes slightly, the younger girl was obscuring her view now “You can keep watch of her too, alert me, if you see any change” she directed in a kind tone and reclined to one of the chairs at the table. The journey up to her had been more strenuous than she had anticipated and she felt chilled to the bone. The commander’s tent had fortunately already been stocked with a blazing fire and Clarke hoped that she would thaw again soon.

~ ~ ~

The first thing which truly registered within Marie’s mind, was the almost oppressive feeling of being buried between way too many furs. Her whole body felt overly heated somehow, although she remembered having felt cold before. The second thing which she noticed when her senses sluggishly returned, was the light pressure of someone else holding onto one of her hands. She could not recognize immediately who it might have been though, it somehow did not feel like Anya or Lexa.

Marie tried opening her eyes, wanting to know who was sitting beside her at the moment. But somehow, her body failed to cooperate right away, everything felt strangely heavy. Her mind was still hazy and she tried to figure out what was the last thing which she could remember. Her breath caught in her throat when the memory of Lexa being impaled by a sword and her rushing to the woman healing her, just after having healed Anya only moments before, returned to her mind in clarity again. She could not remember if she had even managed to heal Lexa and fear gripped her senses.

She distinctly heard someone calling her mind, but she could not identify the voice, which only intensified her fear. What if Lexa had died because she had not reached her in time? Where was Anya then? Tears began to burn behind her eyelids, as the thought invaded her mind that both women could have died during her time of unconsciousness.

~ ~ ~

Ontari looked down at the younger girl with worried eyes. She thought to have felt the faintest answering squeeze coming from Marie’s smaller hand still resting in hers.

“I think she is waking up” she called over her shoulder towards Wanheda, keeping her eyes fixed on Marie’s face. She thought to see the younger girl’s features twisting up slightly. “Marie” she said in a soft tone to the blonde child, bending over her slightly, giving her hand another gentle squeeze.

“Let me see” Clarke spoke up from behind Ontari. She had nearly dozed off in the time the wait had taken, but her senses were immediately awake again, ready to take over the professional care of the girl.

Ontari only begrudgingly made more room for the healer, keeping her hold over Marie’s hand nevertheless and watching with sharp eyes, how Wanheda sat down in her abandoned place, speaking to Marie in soft tone, feeling her neck for her pulse and apparently waiting for the younger girl to truly open her eyes.

Clarke smiled down kindly at Marie, when the young girl in fact did open her eyes a few short moments later. She breathed out a sigh of relieve, a part of her had feared that Marie’s condition would remain critical, but the fact that she had woken on her own after a few hours was a good sign and promising for her health. “You are safe” she immediately reassured the girl, taking her other arm and feeling her wrist for her pulse, finding it steady but slightly elated. She frowned when she noticed the sheen of tears within the child’s grey eyes and she assumed that Marie would probably be suffering from a blazing headache. “I will prepare a tea to ease your pain” she soothed the girl in a soft tone, letting go of her wrist again and quickly standing from the bed. Marie’s eyes had seemed clear and alert enough to assume that the girl was truly awake now again.

Marie’s eyes wandered to whoever was still holding onto her hand and she felt a lump lodge itself into her throat at finding Ontari. She quickly searched through the interior of the tent, but she could not find Lexa or Anya. The thought that something must have happened to them to cause their absence got only louder within her mind. “Where are Lexa and Anya…?” Marie pressed out the words in nothing more than a faint whisper and a tear rolled down her cheek. She felt her innards contract painfully and she feared she would get physically sick if Ontari confirmed her internal suspicion.

Ontari was slightly taken by surprise by the quivering quality of the younger girl’s tone “They are organising what happens now" she answered easily, dark eyes reassuring and calm.

Marie sobbed out a breath of relief “I thought... I thought that...” she cried, overpowered by her confusing feelings in combination with the exhaustion coursing through her body.

Ontari shook her head, gaze softening as she gave her smaller hand another squeeze “They are fine" she reassured kindly. She hesitated for a moment before she reached out and wiped away the tears from Marie’s cheeks softly “The war is over, Marie, Nia has been captured" she added; it only occurred to her now that the younger girl probably was not even aware of what had happened after she had fallen unconscious.

Marie blinked up owlishly at the nightblood girl as it took long moments for the words to truly register within her mind. Her feelings seemed to be going through a rollercoaster right now; cold panic had swept through her senses at the mention of the queen, replaced with relief at her capture, but it could not compare to the relief of knowing that both her moms were well and safe and the war over.

Her lips ghosted into a fleeting smile as she concluded internally that they would be returning to Polis soon then. She did not know for sure what would be happening to the queen now, but she knew that Roan would take up the throne of Ice Nation in her stead. She could barely wait to get back to the capitol and into their comfortable room and to be able to reunite again with Risha as well.

She groaned lightly when she realized just how harshly the pounding in her head had returned.

Ontari’s answering subtle smile immediately froze at the younger girl’s groan. She glanced over her shoulder to see the blonde healer still working on the tea, internally urging her to hurry. It was obvious that the younger girl was in pain after all. “You’ll feel better soon" she tried to reassure the child in a soothing tone. Her words did not seem to have too much of an effect on the younger girl, who just looked outright miserable by now.

“I want my mums...” Marie sobbed under her breath with fresh tears rolling down her cheeks “Can you get them?” she asked with her voice shaking and pleading grey eyes.

Ontari sighed under her breath, biting at her lip slightly. She did not know if searching for the two Trikru women was such a good idea now. There would be a lot to be done now, before they could travel back to Polis. But she also expected that the both of them would be quiet angry with her, if she did not tell them that Marie had asked for them. The commander had stopped a meeting before in order to be there for the blonde child, so it was not unreasonable to assume that she would leave everything behind now as well if asked. She did not like the feeling of having to watch Marie cry so bitterly and it was obvious that her own presence was very little consolation to the younger girl now. So, she sighed under her breath, before she nodded her head subtly in agreement, squeezing her hand one last time, before she let go and swiftly left the tent in search of the commander and the general.

~ ~ ~

It took the healer what felt like long moments until he finished to take care of the wound Nia had inflicted to herself.

Lexa dismissed the man immediately, there were more than enough injured warriors who still were in need of the care of a healer after all. She had been told already from one of the guards that they had apparently failed to search the woman properly for any weapons. The chains binding her arms still allowed her enough movement to pull a hidden small blade from her clothing and bring it to her own neck; the guards had only seen her doing so by chance, nothing more and that angered her immensely.

Anya had listened as well and the clench of her jaw and the sharp glint in her brown eyes, easily betrayed her annoyance at the guards’ shortcomings as well, they had after all been from her own unit. Their shortcomings would fall back on her training when it came to it.

Nia’s eyes seemed almost crazed as she glared at Lexa from her position on the ground and Anya could see the gears turning in her mind, frantically trying to think of a solution of how to get out of the situation somehow.

Lexa glared down at the queen, her jaw clenched together tightly. It would be so easy to give in to her internal urges, kneel down and simply kill the woman now. No one would be able to actually say anything if she was the one to do so, but she knew that it was better in the long run, if she controlled herself and did not give into her craving.

When their eyes met, a vicious snarl took over the woman’s features and her tone was cold as ice and mocking as she inquired “How is Marie? I have heard whispers that you both take her to your beds as well" and to add insult to the injury, being well aware of the effects her words were having, she added with a smug expression “I have quiet enjoyed her company after some training”.

Lexa’s jaw clenched even tighter and she sensed Anya tensing beside her. She held out her arm in front of Anya, all too aware that the woman was probably only a second from snapping, just as she felt her own mind scream loudly at her to really kill the vile woman now.

Anya vividly remembered Marie offering herself to her during the first night back in their quarters and how hard the realisation had hit her of just what the queen had done to the innocent child.

Lexa’s tone was much calmer than even she had thought possible, as she retorted “Tell me, why, Nia?” She tried to keep her face as impassive as possible, but she knew that she had gone pale at the mere suggestion.

Nia laughed a cruel joyless laugh “Oh, there was no special reason, my dear” she mocked in a cruel tone “Did that useless girl at least try to take you out?”

Anya’s patience snapped abruptly and Lexa did not manage in time to physically hold her back from lounging down, before the general already let her fist connect with all her strength with Nia’s nose.

The cracking sound and the blood pouring from the queen's nose showed clearly that her nose was most definitely broken now. But the queen did not look shocked or hurt at all, in the contrary actually and she laughed almost hysterically.

Lexa quickly stepped forward, grabbing Anya’s raised fist, before she could land another punch and pulled the older woman away from the still laughing Nia. She gazed down at the queen with hatred burning within her eyes “You will get the execution that you deserve, no matter what" she promised in a cold tone. She needed to get out of the tent and away from Nia. She felt the anger course hotly through her veins and she was appalled that Nia would even now stoop so low to involve Marie again.

“How dare she" Anya seethed under her breath as soon as they had stepped out of the tent; four guards immediately stepped inside, making it impossible for Nia to do anything anymore now.

Lexa swallowed harshly, her eyes burned with unshed tears, as her hotly burning anger turned into feelings of desperate sadness and utter failure. They had both failed to protect their daughter from cruelty like Nia and now that the child seemed once again closer to death than life, Lexa felt as if even their impending revenge had lost its meaning.

Anya’s rage ebbed away when she noticed the deep sadness clouding Lexa’s features uncharacteristically open to see. She felt her own eyes mist over with tears when the queen's cruel words echoed through her mind again. “She will survive” she said lowly, if to reassure herself or if the words were solely for Lexa’s sake, Anya did not know herself at the moment “She has to" she added a little forlornly.

Anya’s head whirled around when she heard and noticed Ontari hurrying over towards them. Her blood felt as if it froze to ice within her veins momentarily, fearing for the worse news. She had thought twice already that Marie had died, she doubted that she would survive it a third time and remain sane in the process.

“Marie is pleading for the both of you to come" Ontari said, voice a little breathless, as she had asked around the camp for the two women’s whereabouts.

Lexa and Anya bandied a look mutely, feeling the same encompassing relief at the news coursing through their minds and they quickly walked towards the commander’s tent with fast strides, which had noticeably become lighter. Their daughter was still alive, that was all that counted for now, pushing the queen’s toxic words from their minds forcefully.

 

Chapter 234

To Marie it seemed as if the minutes were ticking by awfully slowly. She did not really expect for Ontari have lied to her face about Lexa’s and Anya’s whereabouts or condition, but the wait was making her anxious. She did not really understand what had made her faint on the battlefield at all, neither did she know for sure how much time might have passed since then. But she guessed that Roan must have been able to lead the commander and the small group of warriors to the queen, or the war could surely not have been won this quickly. Or could she have been unconscious for days even? Her brows furrowed in concentration, but the harder she tried to tax her brain, the more intensified her headache became and she let out a groan of pain under her breath.

Clarke turned around quickly at the audible sign of distress coming from the bed, the rebuke to remain in her position was already on her lips, when she noticed that Marie was in fact still lying under the furs. She had just finished the preparation of the tea to dull the child’s pain and cautiously carried the cup over to the bed, sitting down on the edge of the bed, while placing the cup onto a small table at the side.

“Let me help you into a sitting” Clarke offered in a kind tone and reached out under the girl’s armpits, rising the younger girl’s body up and propping a pillow behind her back to keep her in that position. She reached over again for the cup of tea and slowly brought it towards Marie’s face. She did not know for sure if the girl’s hands would be steady enough to hold the cup without sloshing the contents over her fingers and the furs in the process.

Marie’s frown deepened when her fingers closed around Clarke’s on the cup and she realized that the healer had no intention to let go. She resisted slightly when Clarke brought the cup closer to her face, wanting to ask something beforehand “Since when have I been here?” she asked, her brows creased in exertion to try to piece together what could have happened in the last hours or possible even days.

Clarke’s lips thinned slightly, the sheen of sweat glistening on Marie’s skin clearly showed that the child was not feeling well. But it was obvious that the girl was not inclined to drink the tea just yet. “Only a few hours passed, Marie, but you need to drink the tea, you will feel better afterwards” she tried to reason with the child in a patient tone.

Marie pouted lightly “It smells weird” she complained “and I am too hot” she proclaimed in a whiny tone, for emphasize she dramatically threw off one of the many furs still lying over her body.

Clarke tried to suppress an eyeroll at the girl’s childish antics, feeling the exhaustion of the last days eating away at her patience quickly, she had barely managed to pull away the cup of tea before Marie had begun to move the furs around. Irritation flashed through her blue eyes “You are supposed to drink the tea, Marie” she repeated, voice getting a little more forceful.

Marie’s pout turned into a dark scowl, when the smell of the brew truly registered within her muddled mind “Not gonna drink that” she proclaimed, lips pressing together into a thin line, glaring at the cup within Clarke’s hands distrustfully.

Clarke narrowed her eyes at the girl’s defensiveness acting up all of a sudden, she did not know if the child was distrusting her so much now that she did not wish to accept anything from her or if the tea itself was the problem. As she was alone with the girl within the tent now, she could not hand over the cup to someone else with the instruction to make her drink the contents. Her brows furrowed slightly, she had not given the younger girl enough reason to distrust her so deeply, but on the other hand had it never been her intention to blame Marie for Nymo’s death and the blonde child had still drawn that conclusion on her own. She let out a slight sigh of defeat, she could picture already in front of her eyes how well forcing the brew down Marie’s throat would go, if Lexa and Anya were to enter the tent in this very moment, both women would be more than a little agitated and angry at her treatment of their daughter and she was thinking of ways to earn back Lexa’s trust and not destroy whatever sliver of it might be left.

“It is not poisoned, if that is what you are worried about” Clarke exclaimed exasperatedly, patience thinning even further with every passing moment. It was obvious that the child was in pain and she could not understand why the girl was so stubborn right now, she only wanted to help after all.

Marie’s grey eyes suddenly welled up with fresh tears and there was definitely accusation within her nevertheless fiery gaze “I know…” she retorted, voice slightly raised and hands clutching at the furs around her, as a grimace took over her features “…but that’s the tea I was given after the Mountain” she added, as if that would be explanation enough for her reluctance to drink the brew. Marie had identified the smell again only moments ago and she knew that she would be feeling all tired from the stuff and probably fall back asleep only minutes later. She did not want to be pulled under by the brew again, the tea had left her feeling weird before and she definitely would refuse it until she had at least seen Lexa and Anya with her own eyes. A small tiny part of her mind refused to believe Ontari’s words and Clarke’s insistence to now drug her up with the tea only worked as confirmation for her dark thoughts. Maybe the healer just wanted to put her to sleep so that her body could heal first, before her mind would be thrown into encompassing grief, when her whole world would ultimately collapse around her.

Clarke’s brows furrowed in confusion, she had not been there in the immediate time after the Mountain, so she had no idea to what Marie wanted to tell her with this information. She knew that the child had been drilled for bone marrow in the Mountain as well, having seen the small roundish scars on her body with her own eyes. But she did not know with what the healers from Polis had treated the child. Lexa had told her that the healers had not been sure if the girl would ever regain her ability to walk in the wake of the Mountain, so her injuries must have been severe. She guessed that they would have tried to keep the girl immobile for some time at least, to give her body the time to recover without constant jostlement of movements.

When Marie noticed Clarke’s blank look, a tear rolled down her cheeks again and her voice was nothing more than a broken whisper “You just want to keep me drugged, before you tell me of their deaths…” she sobbed out, hugging her knees to her chest under the furs and making herself as small as possible.

Clarke’s eyes looked down at the child with a deep sadness coursing through her mind. It told a lot about the younger girl’s experiences that she would even draw such a conclusion at all and she was slightly taken aback that Marie would truly believe something like that. No child as young as her deserved to feel this hopelessness, Marie had obviously already begun to only assume the worst events to occur now. Her gaze softened, as she finally placed the cup on the table again, giving up on hoping to coax the child to drink the brew for now. She would also not force the girl to drink it, the tea was strong enough to knock the girl out for a few hours and if Lexa and Anya were still as busy as she feared, Ontari might need longer to get them here than the tea would to take effect.

She slowly reached out and placed a hand on the girl’s knees, ignoring the subtle flinch the action caused from the younger girl; the child still flinched at touch when it did not come from the few people she trusted nowadays. “I would not lie to you in such a fashion, Marie” she tried to reason with the younger girl in a soothing tone “And I am sure, neither would Ontari for that matter. I have seen Lexa and Anya myself, they are both fine and they will be here for you as soon as possible” she added as further reassurance in a tone laced with absolute conviction, while she kept her hand on Marie’s knees over the fur covering them.

Marie did not look really convinced and she only began to cry in earnest.

Clarke sighed under her breath; she knew that trying to console the child would be pointless. Ontari had tried before and had not managed to keep the child content and they surely had a deeper and better connection than she shared with Marie. Internally she hoped that Lexa and Anya hurried up before the girl would have worked herself into a state, like she was clearly beginning to.

She watched the girl helplessly for a few moments, wondering if there might be literally anyone else who she could call into the tent to try and calm the upset girl, her crying had only increased and could surely not be helping with her head at all. Clarke wondered if Gustus might be able to help but she doubted that the burly man would be close enough to Marie for that, neither could she truly picture the boulder of a man to be soft enough to sooth her. When nothing came to her mind and Ontari had still not arrived back after more minutes, she began to try to hum Lexa’s lullaby to Marie, hoping to get the melody right or at least close enough for comfort.

Marie’s crying seemed to halt for a moment, but when the girl raised her head from her knees, looking up at Clarke with red puffy eyes, cheeks soaked with tears, a grimace pulled at her lips. “You got it all wrong" she informed the blonde healer humourlessly. She wanted Lexa and Anya and most definitely not Clarke. She guessed that she should not have sent Ontari away, the nightblood girl’s presence had at least been welcome.

Clarke frowned with a frustrated sigh under her breath. She was truly trying with all her might to somehow cheer the child up, but she was obviously failing miserably at it.

Marie had just buried her face back against the furs and her small frame was wracked by heart wrenching sobs.

Clarke’s hands hovered above the girl’s back for a moment, internally debating if touching her was a good idea. She settled against doing so and reclined back slightly, resigning herself to the fact that she truly was not able to sooth the child. She could only stay with her now and wait for the two Trikru women to return. What was taking them so long anyway?

~ ~ ~

Lexa hesitated in front of the entrance to her tent for a moment. Her mind was a mess right now and she could not hinder it from picturing in vivid details just how Nia had tortured their daughter. Flashes of Marie’s past break downs mixed together with what her mind supplied. She knew that the girl’s reactions would have been different then, without her memories in place. But it somehow only made it worse in the moment. The child had told them already that she had not truly questioned what the queen had done to her, accepting it as a given at the time, not remembering any better. Her veins felt as if they were pumping fire instead of blood through her body right now as her mind switched between encompassing rage, hatred, failure and sadness.

Her thoughts came to an abrupt halt when it registered within her mind that part of what she was picturing in front of her eyes was true, the unmistakable sounds of Marie crying bitterly filtered out of the tent.

All of her internal musings of returning to Nia’s side and giving into her dark longing to torture the woman to a slow death fell silent, their daughter needed them.

The guards immediately opened the tent's flaps for them and Lexa and Anya stepped inside quickly.

Anya’s eyes narrowed in rising anger at spotting Clarke sitting beside the obviously miserable child and doing nothing to sooth her.

Clarke’s expression was filled with deep relief when her head whirled around at their footsteps and she backed away from the bed immediately. “I have tried everything" she exclaimed quickly, recognizing the angry glint within the general’s brown eyes “She is convinced that the both of you are dead.”

Lexa and Anya likewise felt as if their breaths were knocked from their chests at the healer's words and they bandied a heavy gaze.

Ontari furrowed her brows in internal frustration, she had after all already told Marie that both women were fine. She did not know why the child had obviously not believed within her words.

“Little star, we are here" Lexa said in a soft tone, quickly stepping passed Clarke and taking up her abandoned seat on the edge of the mattress. She felt a deep sense of guilt at having left the girl’s side in the first place invading her mind, feeling reminded painfully of the fact that she had not been there for Marie after the Mountain as well. She had promised the child to be there for her and she felt as if she had failed at that yet again.

Anya had followed Lexa and sat down beside her and her hands reached up immediately coming to rest on the girl’s back, while the brunette had placed hers on the child’s knees simultaneously.

Marie’s head whipped up as if struck by their touch and the clear surprise flitting over her pale features felt like a knife twisted within their guts; the child had truly believed that she had lost them, her whole composure was screaming with deep grief. “You’re both here...” Marie exclaimed in disbelief, not trusting her own mind for a moment and she uncurled herself only hesitantly, afraid that the two women would suddenly resolve into nothing if she reached out, having only been supplied by her wishful thinking.

When they were still there a second later and the warmth of their touch truly registered within her mind, Marie began to sob again “I thought you’d died...” grey eyes wide and swimming in tears.

“Ssshh, little star" Lexa tried to sooth the girl, feeling her internal pain as if it were her own “We are here" she repeated the obvious and she gently wiped off a few tears from the girl’s cheeks.

Marie looked at them in silence for a moment longer, before she visibly shuddered and launched herself between them, bringing them both into half of a weird hug, immediately soaking in their presence.

“Everything will be alright" Anya tried to reassure the girl in a slightly wavering tone. She knew that Lexa had had to leave the child’s side due to her duties, but she had simply done so after Clarke’s urging and could have stayed behind instead. She felt immensely guilty for not having stayed now, the child would not be this miserable if she had. She was also worried that Marie’s fear of losing them had obviously turned into such a grave situation that she had not believed Ontari’s reassurance that they were fine. She guessed that Clarke truly had tried to sooth the girl and had simply failed.

The child was still shaking and sobbing in their arms for long moments until Marie even remotely began to calm down again. Lexa patiently held onto the girl, letting her fingers card softly through her blonde hair in a soothing motion, humming the melody of the lullaby lowly under her breath, while Anya simply let one of her hands rest on the girl’s back, feeling her shirt getting soaked slowly by the girl’s continuous tears.

Ontari had remained standing beside the bed uncertainly. She had not been able to sooth Marie before, but she did not feel like leaving them alone altogether either. Although she felt as if she was intruding in a private moment.

Clarke stood in the middle of the tent as well, she had not spoken to Marie yet about how the girl felt or if she had experienced any symptoms before losing consciousness. She had seen the girl break down before, but the sight was still a painful one to behold. She dearly wished for all of them that a time of peace and calm would finally be waiting for them. The tea would have surely grown cold by now and by thus losing most of its effects, so she mutely busied herself with preparing a new one for Marie to drink once she was calmer again.

~ ~ ~

It took Marie a long time for her sobs to slowly die down and her eyes were puffy and red-rimmed when she finally loosened her desperate rip on Lexa and Anya. A sheepish look settled onto her features when she noticed Ontari standing right in front of the bed. She could not even tell now, why she had been unable to believe the older girl’s words, it was not as if she was not trusting her after all.

Lexa slowly guided the girl to sit in between them, so that she could really look at her. Although she truly had not expected for the girl to react like that, the relief of seeing the girl alive overweight the sadness of yet another breakdown. When she noticed Marie biting at her lips and the sheepish look on her face, paired with the faint blush rising on her neck, Lexa brushed a strand of hair behind her ear gently “No need for you to be ashamed, little star, we are here and all will be well now" she reassured the girl in a soft tone, holding her teary gaze for a silent moment.

Marie sighed lightly under her breath, nodding her head finally in mute acceptance. “I thought I had lost you...” she nevertheless felt the need to justify her breakdown somehow and the corners of her lips fell.

Anya gently patted the girl’s back “You have not lost us, Marie, neither will you in the foreseeable future" she promised in a calm tone and her brown eyes looked down lovingly at the girl.

Marie smiled faintly at the reassurance; she knew well enough already that Anya could definitely not promise to die. She had seen enough deaths and seen how harsh life could be, but she understood the words for what they were. A reassurance that both women would not leave her side willingly. “Love you...” she mumbled, still a little sheepish, burrowing back against them. She involuntarily let out a pained groan when she turned her head to rest it on Lexa’s chest and scraped the bump on her forehead against one of the huge buckles of the commander’s coat.

Lexa immediately backed off from the girl, guiding her to lie down with a little force. She mostly ignored the clear look of protest settling on Marie’s features at the loss of contact. She had seen already that the girl had not drunk the tea made for her by Clarke and the girl needed to rest as much as possible before they would begin their journey back to the capitol. She continued to hold onto one of Marie’s hands though, not breaking the contact completely.

Nia’s taunts resonated through her mind momentarily. A picture of the woman holding Marie down forcefully on a bed forced itself into her mind and Lexa swallowed past the lump in her throat, trying to clear her mind of her imagination. She turned to look over her shoulder and asked Clarke to hand her the cup of the fresh tea; it was unlikely that the girl would drink when Clarke tried to coax her to.

“You need to drink the tea now, Marie" she addressed the girl in a gentle tone underlined with a little firmness.

Marie pulled a face, protest clear in her features “I don’t wanna sleep...you'll be gone then" she whined, holding on tighter to Lexa’s hand.

Anya’s brows furrowed slightly at the girl’s words. The child had been clingy before but this was extreme.

“We will be here, little star” Lexa assured the girl easily. Even if she would be called away, which could sadly happen, Anya would remain behind at Marie’s side now.

Marie still was visibly reluctant to drink the tea and fought off the tiredness settling into her mind only moments later.

“Rest now, little star" Lexa soothed the girl; she had sat down next to the girl on the bed again, trailing one of her hands gently over her arm in a soothing motion.

Marie’s eyes slowly began to droop, she continued to look over at Anya for some time, until she drifted off in Lexa’s arms.

Clarke sighed under her breath “I still need to speak with her when she wakes up" she said, a little annoyed that she had waited for nothing now.

Lexa looked up from the child leaned against her only distractedly “I’ll have you summoned when she wakes" she dismissed the healer easily.

Clarke huffed once, but nodded and left the tent without another word, going back to the other healers to help where she could.

“I had tried to reassure her before" Ontari spoke up in a frustrated tone once Clarke had left.

Anya inclined her head, she had expected nothing less and was not holding it against her older charge that she had failed at it “We know, you should rest now as well" she answered easily, motioning the nightblood girl to another pellet of furs prepared for her. She would rest with Lexa and Marie on the bed.

Ontari nodded and gave the general a tight smile, before she reclined to the furs. She really hoped that Marie would be feeling better once she woke again.

 

Chapter 235

Anya quickly divested herself of her armour, leaving her in her underclothes which were comfortable enough to sleep in. A glance over her shoulder told her that Ontari had followed her instruction and had already lied down on the pellet of furs reserved for her. The nightblood girl had not been healed by Marie’s talent, so she would probably be truly tired, while Anya herself still felt fully rested and even refreshed.

She stopped in front of the bed for a moment, simply observing Lexa lying on the bed curled together with Marie. The child’s face had obviously been wiped clean of the war paint by Clarke and her cheeks still held the damp sheen of her tears. 

For a moment Anya remained rooted to the spot, internally imaging just how the events of the past months would have played out without the child they now considered their daughter in the picture.

Anya highly doubted that she would have been called back to the commander’s side at all. At least she was fairly certain that she would have remained within one of the smaller Trikru outposts if Skykru had never fallen from the sky. A light frown settled on her features as she let her mind spin this scenario into a future. Tris would probably have survived, the girl had shown great potential after all. But she herself would have remained away from her place, sent away with the rumour of the commander’s most trusted general somehow losing the leader’s faith.

Had Skykru fallen in the same place but maybe without Marie existing at all, Anya knew that Lexa would have ordered her unit to take care of the invaders again. She would have failed at that again, she would still have underestimated the skills and survival will of the Skykru children. She might still have ended up within the Mountain, maybe even dragging herself back to TonDC. But Marie had convinced Abby to help her and by thus saved her life.

Which scenario hurt the most to imagine was of seeing Marie within the holding cell in TonDC and coming to a different conclusion, killing the innocent child instead on the spot, just like Indra had proposed back then. She would have never even known what kind of chances she would have destroyed in doing so. It would not just have ended with her own death, but Lexa would surely have fallen by now as well. Nia would still be in a place of power and Anya shuddered to imagine just what would have happened with the Ice queen and her loyal nightblood. Without Marie the nightblood girl would surely never have even considered to change her views and to be honest, neither would Lexa have considered to let her survive at all.

The hint of a smile tilted the corners of her lips upwards. The probably biggest change Marie had brought about was hers and Lexa’s change of perspective. Marie had somehow managed to worm her way into both of their hearts, bringing them back close together as well. They were now in fact much closer than ever. Long ago when she had still been the nightblood's first, there had always been a barrier of respect and station between them and later this had only been changed as Lexa rose to become commander, outranking her previous first by far. Anya had not seen Lexa look so utterly relaxed and even content as she was now holding onto the blonde child, black war paint still in place together with most of her armour, after Costia's death she had been sure to never see the brunette like this as well. Anya had always been convinced, right from the very moment of meeting Lexa all those years ago, that it actually would be her heart which would make her the great leader she was now. After the loss of her first love the commander had been nothing more than a grimmer shell of her former self and although Anya knew that her former second still executed her duty, she had heard of enough harsher decisions the commander had made which the woman would have done differently before closing off her heart. Somehow Marie had managed to bring the part of Lexa back to life which Anya had been convinced to have been lost forever, she somehow doubted that Clarke would have been able to do the same.

She was pulled out of her thoughts again when Anya felt the weight of Lexa’s gaze resting on herself and the other woman’s gaze was questioning and one of her brows raised in apparent confusion for her hesitation to join them. The contrast between the child, dressed down to her underclothes and Lexa, still wearing most of the regalia of the commander and black paint smeared over her features, was stark. Anya had never thought that something had been missing from her life before, but now it was almost unthinkable that Marie was not with them.

Anya smiled slightly as she sat down on the bed, feeling Lexa’s eyes still resting on her in silent question as to what was on her mind. “I had never thought that it could be like this" she mused and a gentle expression took over her features.

Lexa seemed to contemplate the vague words for a moment, but she inclined her head in agreement, when she felt one of the older woman’s hands coming to rest upon her own on the girl’s back. She understood now what Anya must have seen in her moment of hesitation and she tightened her arms around Marie’s smaller frame, bringing the girl slightly closer to her chest. She had never dreamed of a life beyond the duties of the commander. She had once wished for something more, believing that she could find it with Costia. But when her love had been ripped away in such a brutal fashion, she had accepted that she was required to spend her life alone solely committed to her people. Now, she once again dreamt of something more and Lexa knew within her heart how dangerous this was. She would fight with all her might to protect those she loved, unwilling to lose her daughter and former first.

~ ~ ~

The narcotic effects of the tea Clarke had prepared for Marie kept the child asleep, even when Lexa was called from outside of the tent.

The commander’s green eyes immediately snapped open and a slight scowl rested on her features as she slowly and carefully detangled herself from the peacefully sleeping girl. She did not actually wish to get out of the bed, already assuming that Marie would surely wake up in her time of absence and after the way how Marie had reacted to their absence before, Lexa was reluctant to leave now. She huffed under her breath in rising annoyance, coursing the fact that she was needed right now.

Anya watched the younger woman get out of bed with a slight smirk gracing her lips, it was more than obvious that Lexa wanted anything but having to leave to this tent now. When the brunette glanced over her shoulder for a moment as if hesitating to actually go, she spoke up “Go, Lexa, she will be fine” she reassured, amusement colouring her tone lightly.

Lexa’s brows visibly furrowed and for a moment Anya even thought she would retaliate something, before the woman turned on her heels and swept out of the tent.

Marie sighed under her breath and one of her hands reached out to the place where Lexa had just been moments ago.

Anya turned her attention from the tent’s flaps back to the blonde girl, shushing her lightly. Slowly she urged the girl to turn over to her and it took only another moment until the girl now lay within her arms, head placed against her chest and the girl’s breathing evened out again quickly as well.

Anya continued to hold onto Marie, letting one hand card lightly through her blonde strands of hair. She noticed absentmindedly that the locks had already grown a bit again since her return to the capitol. It would surely take more months if not even a year for it to grow back to its original length, but she was certain that Marie would wish for it to grow out again.

She did not know for what exactly Lexa had even been called out of their tent, but whatever it was, was obviously taking a while.

Marie began to stir within her arms some time later and this time Anya was not able to sooth the girl before she could wake up completely. She looked down at the child, careful to keep watch over the girl’s reaction, not wanting her to fall back into another state of panic.

Marie blinked her eyes open slowly and she immediately sensed that it was not Lexa any longer who was embracing her, but rather Anya. Her brows creased slightly when she realized sluggishly that the commander was nowhere in sight.

“Where is Lexa?” Marie asked, a definite whine to her tone and a slight pout formed on her lips.

Anya huffed under her breath, trying not take affront from the fact that the girl was obviously not satisfied with just her own presence. “Lexa was called out some time ago” she answered in a calm tone, helping the girl into a sitting position with careful hands.

“How does your head feel?” she asked, having sat up as well and keeping a hand on the girl’s back.

Marie’s brows scrunched upwards and she slightly tilted her head to the side as she concentrated on the feeling within her head. She groaned slightly when the continuous ache which had replaced the sharp pain truly registered within her mind. “It still hurts” she complained as her pout deepened.

Anya’s brown eyes took on a worried glint, as she slipped from the bed to have a guard summon Clarke back to their tent, but she was stopped by Marie’s hands suddenly gripping onto one of her wrists with a surprisingly strong hold.

“Don’t go…” the girl breathed out pleadingly, grey eyes already visibly tearing up again as she stared up at the woman.

Anya gently pried the girl’s fingers from her wrist “I will not leave the tent” she promised honestly. She just needed to go over to the entrance for one of the guards to hear her. She could have easily shouted to call one guard inside, but that would have surely woken Ontari up and the nightblood girl clearly deserved to get some undisturbed rest as well. It worried her slightly that the young girl was showing this extreme amount of clinginess now after her breakdown and she really hoped that the girl’s behaviour would normalise itself again once she was feeling better again.

She could feel the girl’s eyes following her every step through the tent as she ordered a guard to summon Clarke. Anya did not know if the girl’s head injury could truly be the cause for her to lose consciousness like she had, but some part of her mind feared that more was wrong with the girl. She could not put a finger onto it at the moment, but something was not adding up in her mind.

Anya was not sure if Abby would be able to find something if they were to bring Marie to Skykru for a check-up. But she did also not know if that was a good idea either. The Skykru doctor would surely find that some of Marie’s wounds had healed unnaturally fast; the scars where the Mountain had drilled into her body were barely visible on her skin any longer. They had all agreed that the child’s unique talent needed to be kept secret and she was not sure if the possibility of Abby finding out about it was worth it. Maybe she was just worrying over nothing and was just internally afraid that something more might be wrong with their daughter, that her mind was making her see signs where nothing actually was to see. Clarke had agreed that she highly doubted that her mother would just be placated if she found out about Marie’s talent, so Anya shook the fleeting idea of bringing the girl back to Skykru from her mind again.

Anya turned back around, stepping through the tent and sitting down on the edge of the bed again. She rolled her eyes mutely, when the girl immediately scrambled to crawl over, so that she could lean her smaller frame against her arm again. She really had no idea just why the child seemed to depend so much on physical touch, seeking it out on every opportunity. After what Nia had put Marie through, she would have assumed it more logical that the girl would fear every kind of touch, no matter if sexual or innocent. In part this assumption was even true, the girl shied away from even the subtlest touch of people she did not trust, but she was absolutely clingy with them.

It took only a few moments for Clarke to arrive back inside of the commander’s tent. The blonde must have touched her cheek while her hands had been coated in fresh blood and had left behind a red streak on one of her cheeks. Anya felt slightly guilty that they had obviously called the healer from warriors who might be dependent on the woman’s presence to save their lives. But her continued and probably irrational worry for the girl, kept her silent, deciding against sending the healer away again.

The corners of Marie’s lips fell in clear disappointment at finding Clarke within the tent, she had hoped that Lexa would have returned.

Anya’s eyes turned slightly harder at the girl’s apparent negative reaction. She wanted Marie to be honest with Clarke, otherwise the healer could not adequately help her. “Clarke wants to examine you again and she will ask you some questions” she exclaimed, before the blonde Skykru woman could actually say anything.

Clarke watched the general speak with Marie with a slightly raised brow, wondering why the woman was interfering, before she had actually begun to take care of the younger girl. She was truly surprised when the general seemed to caution the girl in an almost strict tone to answer her questions truthfully. She would have expected the older woman to be suspicious of her still, remembering her warning in Polis quiet clearly. But it seemed that Anya was strictly separating her work as a healer from her own person.

She plastered a slight kind smile onto her features before she stepped closer to the bed. It was thankfully obvious that the girl was so much calmer now that she actually knew that Lexa and Anya were fine. Her smile widened a little when she noted how Anya sat down beside Marie and without even batting an eye held offered one of her hands to the girl. The love between the two was almost palpable wen Marie immediately grasped onto it with a relieved and thankful expression.

“Hi Marie” she greeted the child kindly, keeping a close watch of the girl’s face, looking for hints of the girl’s condition.

Marie only turned her grey eyes towards Clarke, but stayed silent for now, waiting for her to state an actual question.

“How are you feeling?” Clarke asked into the slight silence, keeping her tone calm. She lightly reached out towards Marie and she swallowed down the sigh at the girl’s apparent flinch.

Marie only reluctantly answered the question when she felt Anya giving her hand a squeeze in mute warning. “Well enough” she said a little reluctantly.

Clarke raised a brow critically and one corner of her lips turned down in disappointment, it did not take a genius to figure out that the child was not being truthful now.

Marie huffed, she did not really even know why she was so defensive now, only that she did not even really want to speak to Clarke, she wanted to cuddle with Anya and preferably Lexa as well and go back to sleep, so that hopefully the headache would be gone again. She did not wish to think about her head or why she had fallen unconscious at all.

“Marie” Anya addressed the girl, giving her hand another, a little stronger squeeze and her tone had a reprimanding hint.

Marie’s grey eyes flicked to Anya shortly, before they returned to Clarke and she reluctantly answered “It hurts still”. Her whole composure clearly conveyed that she wished to be anywhere else at the moment.

Clarke nodded in acknowledgement “Has the pain changed after the tea?” she questioned further.

Marie agreed easily, telling her that it had changed more into an annoying ache than anything else.

“The tea might not have been strong enough” Clarke mused thoughtfully “You can have another later” she added a moment later. She had been careful not to mix the herb into the tea which was the main ingredient of the sleeping tonic which Marie had used too much of on her own, afraid that the girl’s body could either react hypersensitive or show no reaction at all any longer.

“Have you had problems with your head before you hit it in the village?” Clarke continued her questioning, while she bent forward and gently felt along the girl’s head.

Marie winced visibly at the touch and her lips pressed into a thin line. She still let out a little yelp when Clarke touched the actual bump and instinctually moved further away from her, burrowing herself against Anya in search of her protection.

“Problems?” she echoed with a frown taking over her features, while she stayed almost glued to Anya’s side, thankfully the general did not make any comment on it.

Clarke nodded, explaining “Yeah, like headaches, losing consciousness, irregular sleep or being overly tired, nosebleeds, dizziness. Anything unusual really”.

Marie’s frown deepened and a series of short memories flashed up in front of her eyes. How she had suddenly had a nosebleed while sharing the bath with Lexa, which had not even been the first time, now that she thought about it. She had also been pretty tired especially the last days in Polis, but she guessed that that could also have been caused by her forced time of rest.

Anya snaked an arm around the girl’s frame and she felt her heart beat a little quicker within her chest at Clarke’s words. The blonde Skykru healer had enumerated more than one thing of what she had already seen the girl develop in Polis. But she had not thought anything really of the little acts of being too tired, falling asleep even before they joined Marie on the bed. They had both been worried when the girl had suddenly had a nosebleed without having been hit in the face during training and the child’s appetite had not been normal since her return from her time with Nia.

When it became clear that Marie had no intention of actually giving a verbal answer, beside shrugging her shoulders vaguely, Anya spoke up. She was too worried now to keep silent. She had already been worried in Polis that something might be wrong with Marie, but with the war looming above them, the girl’s slightly off behaviour had simply not seemed so dire to require immediate attention and she had also vastly chalked it off to the child’s fear of having to return to Ice Nation lands.

“Marie has been overly tired in the last weeks already” Anya stated in a calm voice, but Clarke still saw the definite worry within her brown eyes.

“Tired beyond training?” Clarke asked inquiringly. She had formulated the symptoms very broad, beside the head injury there could certainly be hundreds of possibilities for the younger girl to be sick with. She really hoped that the child was not suffering from any disease but that her symptoms could have also only been caused by stress, she knew how strong the mental health could have an influence on the physical health as well. The young girl had already suffered through too much and she was not sure if her body and mind would be strong enough to fight off a severe disease. She knew that the girl’s mother had died from a disease on the Ark as well, but she could not remember from what she had suffered.

Anya nodded with a slightly frustrated sigh, remembering how the girl had fallen asleep almost instantly on the first day of training, where she had actually barely let the child do anything. The few days of rest should not have been enough time for Marie to have such a drastic set back in her endurance.

Clarke frowned, filing the information for later “Anything else?” she questioned. With this kind of broad information, she would never be able to narrow down what could be wrong with the girl. She still doubted that the head injury would have enough to cause her to fall unconscious just like that, if that had been the case, she was convinced that Marie would have already shown greater problems while riding for hours.

With another sigh, Anya enumerated all the little things which she could remember now. She might be telling too much to Clarke now, but she guessed that it could only help the healer in providing the best care to Marie. The way with which Clarke’s expression got darker and darker every moment, made Anya’s heart plummet to her stomach and she held tighter onto the girl, wishing that she could just somehow shield her from everything with her very arms.

Clarke shook her head in slight exasperation “I cannot say what could be causing this, but what you just said does not sound normal and healthy at all. I will prepare another tea for you” she said to Marie and she felt slightly guilty for the unmistakable fear shining in the girl’s grey eyes as she looked up at her “I will have to contact my mother once we reach Polis, maybe she knows more or can do some tests” she proposed and stood up again to quickly prepare another tea.

“I can’t be sick…” Marie breathed out with wide grey eyes, looking up at Anya pleadingly.

Anya pursed her lips slightly, swallowing forcefully as she gave the girl a little squeeze “You will be fine in now time” she tried to reassure the child. She recognized now that she should have spoken with Clarke alone, without Marie present, but something in the child’s reaction told her that Marie herself must have recognized that something was not right with her any more and she could already feel the slight frustration bubbling beneath the surface at the fact that the girl had not said anything about it. “You already noticed something” she finally said, keeping her tone as light as possible and the slight wince Marie gave in reaction was answer enough. Anya sighed under her breath, pinching the bridge of her nose.

“I had not wanted to bother you …” Marie tried to reason in a small voice.

Anya sighed under her breath, shaking her head in mute agitation at the child and simply pulling her into a firmer hug “Everything will turn out alright” she tried to sooth her. It simply had to be, the mere thought of losing the girl was too painful to even contemplate.

 

 

Chapter 236

Lexa returned to the tent a few hours later; she had been called out because the pyres for the fallen warriors had been erected so that their souls could be set free again. She had been required to light each single one of them and she had remained behind until they had nearly burnt down as well. Although the number of the warriors who had found their death had been minimal in comparison to how it would have turned out if the war had changed into a siege, Lexa still regarded every fallen one as a senseless death.

Azgeda especially would need even more help from the coalition now if the clan was to survive the next year. Nia had truly called most of the food and supplies to this fortress, obviously in preparation of a siege. If Roan had not led them inside, Lexa did not know if they truly would have won at all. The queen obviously had not cared one bit if all of her warriors would have starved in the process, as long as she herself would have survived. Without the aid of the coalition, it would be the normal population of Ice Nation who would not even have a chance at survival. She could already imagine how hard of a time she would have to convince the other clans that they were required to aid to the people of Azgeda. She hoped that the crowning of Roan by her hands would make them at least a little likelier to offer help. If not, skirmishes at all borders to Azgeda would break out in the next months and not because the people did not want to abide by her laws, but simply because they were starving and she knew the length to which people would go to make sure their families survived.

From the corner of her eyes she had seen Clarke hasten from one of the healers' tents over to her own. She immediately felt a little antsy when the blonde woman did not return after a few moments, wondering just what exactly could be taking the healer this long. Marie hopefully only still had a headache from the bump on her head, but Lexa was powerless to stop the seed of worry from forming in her mind, the longer it took the other woman to exit her tent again.

Lexa was standing too far away from her tent to be able to recognize the expression on Clarke’s face, when the healer in fact finally left the commander’s tent and the woman hurried back to the other healers before Lexa could even think of approaching her. She knew just how many wounded warriors there were who needed attention and she guessed that Anya would be able to tell her as well about whatever Clarke might have determined.

Although her expression had been void of any emotions, as she watched the pyres burn, together with the warriors of the army who were not severely wounded, internally Lexa was already planning on what all needed to be executed now, while a large part of her mind stubbornly refused to let her attention  wander from Marie, instead constantly wondering if the girl was fine or if she might have been asking after her again. She did not doubt for a moment that Anya was not fully capable of taking care of the girl on her own, but she knew how clingy and upset Marie could be after a breakdown and it just annoyed her that she was not able to be there for their daughter now. It had happened quiet a few times already that the girl had refused to be calmed until they both had been with her after all.

So, she only felt a slight surge of relief course through her mind when the pyres had finally burnt down low enough for her to return to her tent again.

Lexa was slightly surprised to spot Marie asleep upon her return. She had been convinced that the girl would have refused to go back to sleep before she returned, but she shook the thought from her mind as soon as it came up. Her slight relief at finding the child asleep and calm, dwindled down quickly when she took in Anya’s and Ontari’s expression, both sitting at a table together and obviously having been delivered a light dinner.

Ontari had woken up only shortly before Clarke had left and the few words which she had still caught passing between the general and the healer had been enough to alert her to the fact that something was indeed wrong with the younger girl. She had observed some things as well before they left Polis, but she had not said anything to Anya to Marie’s urging that she would be feeling better once the war was over again and that she did not wish to worry Anya and Lexa who had been stressed enough with the preparation of the war. She had waited until Marie had fallen asleep again to stand up as well and tell the general of what she now remembered as odd about the younger girl’s behaviour.

“...kept on nearly falling asleep..." Ontari said, falling silent immediately when she noticed the arrival of the commander.

Lexa furrowed her brow in confusion, she could sense that something was obviously wrong “What has Clarke said?” she asked, green eyes shortly staying on Anya inquiringly, before she moved through the tent and to the bed, bending down slightly above Marie and feeling her temperature gently, careful not to wake the girl with her subtle touch.

Anya’s expression clearly conveyed her internal worry “She does not know what has caused her to lose consciousness like that. She wants to ask her mother for help" she retold quickly and her tone reflected her worry as well.

Lexa turned from the bed with a frown, if Clarke was willing to engage Abby, then whatever the woman might assume must be severe and she felt her heart grow heavy with the realization that Marie might be sick with something. She hoped that the girl’s state could have been explained by her head injury, she still remembered that the girl’s skull had been supposed to remain more delicate after her aneurysm. “You have seen that something was wrong with her and have not said anything?” she addressed Ontari with rising irritation, piecing together internally which conversation her arrival had obviously interrupted.

Ontari’s brows creased and she opened her mouth to defend herself, but Anya silenced her with a slight glare.

“We have noticed her nose bleeding without any cause as well, or how tired she suddenly was without even really exerting herself” Anya supplied before the commander could place the blame on her older charge which would only be highly unfair to the nightblood girl. Marie herself had after all kept silent as well.

Lexa deflated visibly, letting herself sink down on the other empty chair as if drained of her strength all of a sudden. Now that Anya had mentioned it, numerous occasions flashed up in front of her eyes of instances where Marie’s behaviour had seemed off somehow. She immediately felt a slight guilt settle in her mind when she realized that Marie had not just not told them about not feeling well but had in fact actively tried to hide that something was off. “Why has she not said anything?” she asked in a slightly pained voice.

Anya’s brown eyes were sad as she shook her head with a sigh “She has not wanted us to worry in the wake of the war” she easily explained. She could even understand why the girl would have thought so at all, but it was truly not Marie’s job to try to protect them from something.

Lexa’s lips thinned visibly in displeasure at the other woman’s words and her frown deepened. She wondered if she somehow could have conveyed to the girl that she did not regard her as important enough to wish to know from any problem immediately. Could she have somehow put it into the girl’s mind that she thought of the war as more important than herself?

~ ~ ~

The night passed relatively slow. Marie had woken up again after a few hours of more sleep, clearly still cranky and suffering still from a persisting headache. Lexa and Anya both had had their arms full to try and calm the girl down on numerous times during the night.

On the next morning Anya was almost relieved when it was finally late enough to rise from the furs again. She did not feel rested at all any longer and she highly doubted that she would have gotten more than an hour of sleep on a stretch.

“How does your head feel?” she asked Marie in a rather tight tone, once she saw the girl opening her eyes as well.

Marie shrugged slightly, the pain had truly gotten better since yesterday, but she knew that they would probably soon begin their march back to Polis and the prospect of having to sit in a saddle and by thus being jostled for hours on end did not sound so appealing. Being able to stay in the bed for longer and ideally together with Lexa and Anya did sound much better in her mind. She discarded the idea of asking to be allowed to stay in bed, when she noticed the even slightly strict expression on Lexa’s face though.

“I am sure that you can have another of those teas” Anya mused in a slightly worried tone. She could not say if the bump on the girl’s forehead had gotten any smaller already, but she guessed that the girl’s headache would recede once her bump would have gone down as well.

“You are to tell us immediately if you experience anything off at all” Lexa addressed the girl in a voice tinted with strictness, although she placed a hand gently on the girl’s back.

Marie leaned back slightly into the touch, but she nodded her head with a sheepish expression in mute agreement. She was saved from having to actually give a further verbal answer by breakfast being brought into the tent with the urgent message that Roan wished to talk to Lexa.

The atmosphere during breakfast was rather tense, it was obvious that all of them were tired, even Ontari had been woken up several times through the mind.

Marie more or less only picked on her food, not feeling hungry at all. The mention of Roan had made her remember something, namely that she had no idea what would be happening to the queen now. Would the woman be executed? Would she be expected to partake in that as well? She had already seen and participated in enough executions by now and she was not feeling well at all with the thought of having to see the woman again. She was fairly certain that Lexa and Anya would truly make sure that the queen could not actually touch her ever again, but the mere thought of seeing her again, made her body tense and her heart beat faster within her chest in nervous anticipation.

“Eat, Marie” Anya reprimanded the girl lightly, having watched the child only picking on her food without actually eating for long enough now.

Marie looked up at the general with a slight pout, her stomach was already clenching and she doubted that she could truly stomach much, not that she had felt any real appetite to being with. She hesitated for long moments, before she finally spoke up, voice quivering noticeably “What happens with the queen now?” she asked, grey eyes flitting between Lexa and Anya inquiringly.

“Nia will be brought to Polis and publicly executed” Lexa proclaimed in a slightly icy tone. She was internally already looking more than a little forward to finally bring the older woman’s death.

Marie swallowed visibly, paling a little as well “Will I … will I have to be there?” she pressed out with great effort, breathing quickening.

Anya’s expression tuned compassionate immediately and she wished to be able to tell the girl something positive, but as the commander’s second the child would most definitely be expected to be there as well when the queen was executed. At the length at which she had suffered at the woman’s hands, would also grant her the right to partake in it as well. They could certainly keep the girl from having to really participate, but excusing her absence would be hard and would once again renew the rumours of Marie’s continued allegiance to the Ice queen.

“No, Marie, you will not have to be there” Lexa proclaimed in a kind tone, green eyes shining with conviction. She would make sure that the ambassadors would not dare to speak up against the girl as well.

Marie breathed out a sigh of relief, looking at the commander with an expression of gratitude. Maybe she would be lucky and not even come face to face with the queen at all again.

Lexa left the tent shortly after, intent on meeting with the future king of Ice Nation as soon as possible, while Anya had remained behind to stay with Marie and assist the girl in getting ready as well. In all truth, Anya was actually unwilling to leave the child alone with Ontari right now, preferring to keep both girls company personally now.

~ ~ ~

The camp of the army was already beginning to be dismantled in various places when Marie looked around. Gustus had already returned to the entrance of her tent, visibly better rested again and she gave the burly man a slight smile in mute greeting. The spot on the other side of the entrance had been filled by another Trikru warrior for now and a new personal guard to the commander would be need to be appointed once they had returned to the capitol. Her smile froze visibly when her mind realized that Ryder’s absence must mean that the man had not survived the battle; Marie could not remember when the man might have fallen though.

Thankfully Clarke had given her a different tea after breakfast; it worked efficiently to numb the ache in her skull, but it would not make her so tired again. Marie hoped that she would be able to stay awake for longer now and maybe even be allowed to ride alone again. She knew that the generals were probably all watching her and appearing too weak to ride alone, could certainly not be good.

Marie faltered a little in her steps walking beside Anya as the commander’s tent was supposed to be cleared out and dismantled now as well, when her gaze fell on a small tent which was visibly heavily guarded. She did not need to ask who was being held inside at all.

Anya stopped walking when she caught Marie hesitating from the corner of her eyes and her gaze followed the child’s gaze for a moment; she sighed under her breath, rage at the queen and compassion for Marie battling in her mind. “She will not be able to touch you ever again” Anya promised in a low tone, stepping closer to Marie and putting a hand around her shoulders in a supportive gesture, while Ontari stepped beside them, efficiently blocking Marie’s view of the small tent with her own body.

Marie tried to muster up a convinced smile, but it turned more into a doubtful grimace at best and she tried to simply push all thought about the queen from her mind. She hoped that she would be able to stop thinking about her after the queen’s execution, maybe her nightmares would finally ease off then as well.

“Can I ride on my own again?” Marie asked, trying to keep her tone steady, but it still shook a little.

Anya frowned slightly at the girl’s question, Marie’s determined expression clearly conveyed that riding alone was for some reason important to her right now, but she was hesitant to agree. Clarke still did not know how much off an influence the girl’s head injury had on her constitution or if it was even likely that Marie could lose consciousness without much of a forewarning again. If that happened during the ride, it would be unlikely that either of them would be quick enough to catch the girl before she fell from her horse. She could already envision exactly that happening and Anya was sure that Marie would likely hit her head again, which surely could only worsen her situation.

Marie’s hopeful expression already dimmed notably, Anya’s continued silence was enough answer to her question and a slight pout settled on her features.

“I do not want to see you fall from the horse should you lose consciousness again” Anya tried to reason with the girl in a soft tone.

Marie rolled her eyes slightly and annoyance creeped into her tone “I would not fall” she proclaimed with conviction.

Anya’s lips thinned “You cannot foresee that, Marie”.

“I could share a horse with her” Ontari offered, voice slightly hesitant. She did not know if Anya would actually even consider the offer, she would surely not let the younger girl drop from the horse on purpose.

The frown remained on Anya’s features; in all honesty she would feel better if she personally made sure that the blonde girl was alright. She would be able to keep a closer watch over Marie with the child with her on her own mount. She doubted that Lexa would share her mare with Marie now, too many important people were within the ranks of the army still to allow such open closeness to the child for Lexa.

Ontari gave the younger girl an apologetic slight smile, when the general declined her offer, proclaiming that Marie would be sharing her own horse again with the Trikru woman. She did not really know though why Marie seemed slightly disappointed by the woman’s words, trudging in between them with her shoulders visibly hunched and her eyes glued to the snowy ground at her feet.

Anya let the girl stew in silence, knowing better than to try and cheer the girl up again. She counted on the fact that Marie’s mood would likely change quickly again once they reached the horses.

Marie stayed mute beside her, while she quickly listened to a report on the progress of taking down the camp. It would not take them long to be able to begin their journey back. The army would also not be required to travel together as one unit either, so that those on horses could travel ahead.

She watched on with a slightly knowing smirk how Marie quickened her pace a little once the animals got into sight. Amusement danced through her eyes as her own and Lexa’s mounts immediately moved towards their daughter as well, greeting the child on the way. It still astounded her how easily Marie seemed to get on with animals like that.

Marie’s smile turned bigger when she reached out with gloved hands to caress the two enormous horses. She giggled lightly, when the commander’s mare moved even closer to her face, blowing its breath out in a huff. The tea had taken full effect by now and she barely felt any residual ache within her head, keeping her eyes open and focusing on something was also not painful anymore. Internally, she was really looking forward to the prospect of returning to Polis. She did not know for sure what would be happening in the upcoming days either.

~ ~ ~

Marie let herself be hoisted onto the hazelnut horse in front of Anya and immediately settled back into a comfortable position against the woman’s firm chest, feeling her long arms reaching around herself and securing her in place.

She glanced over at Lexa mounting her own horse on one of their sides, the commander’s face had been wiped clean of the war paint again and her green eyes quickly scanned the group of warriors who would travel with them.

Thanks to one of the Ice Nation warriors, now riding with them, they now knew a route through the ice plane which was save to take and had not been manipulated. Marie had already wondered how they had planned to cover it, but that way they now did not lose any more warriors to the icy waters.

She did not know exactly why, but she guessed that barely any time had passed on their travels yet, when she felt her limps growing heavier again, as fatigue settled back in her mind.

Anya looked down at the child in her arms with slightly worried eyes, when she noticed that the girl was obviously already having difficulties to stay alert; her head continued to fall down on her chest for short moments as Marie was still fighting actively against her exhaustion.

“Rest, little star” she hushed into the girl’s ears, pulling her smaller body more firmly against herself. She could only hope that more rest would make the girl feel better later.

 

 

Chapter 237

The journey back to Polis passed mostly in a blur to Marie.

The gentler tea which Clarke had prepared for her before they had begun their way back to the capitol had not been effective enough to keep her headache under control for long. As soon as she had woken up, a few hours later, her head had been pounding viscously and everything was spinning around her.

Anya was barely quick enough to bring her horse to a sudden halt and dismount with the girl still in her arms, before Marie bent over and began to vomit out her whole breakfast again.

Lexa immediately ordered the whole group to a stop; they had left behind the rest of the army who were traveling on foot some time ago now. She nearly jumped from her horse in her haste to get closer to Anya and Marie, watching the child being sick with worried green eyes. She felt a little relieved to note that the girl did not seem to have another nosebleed at least, but she still only hesitantly made more room for Clarke, hurrying over as well.

Clarke had to give Marie something stronger, knocking the girl out again only moments later. Lexa internally contemplated if it would be better to ride back to the fortress, where the girl could get some real rest. Roan would surely not have anything against that, but Clarke seemed convinced that bringing the child closer to Arkadia was the better solution for now. She said that whatever was causing the girl to feel like that was hopefully not life-threatening and the other healers had not been any wiser than her, so Abby was probably the only one who might be able to diagnose what was actually wrong with the girl.

Lexa spurred the group back on with renewed urgency to bring Marie back to the capitol as soon as possible. Clarke had offered that she could reach out to her mother once they came into a distance at which their radio would be working again, so that the older woman could even already be within the capitol when they reached it.

Even without the immediate effect of the tea numbing her senses, Marie now almost constantly felt tired and exhausted. Lexa and Anya had to keep her awake in the evening long enough to actually get her to eat something. The tent which had been erected for them for the night was not large enough to offer any room for Ontari as well, so the nightblood girl would be spending the night in Gustus’ tent with the burly guard.

In her attempt to cut some meat up for Marie and simultaneously keeping the girl balanced as well, Lexa sliced into her own fingers. Before she even had time to react with more than annoyed hiss, Marie had reached out and closer her own fingers around Lexa’s, healing the slight graze in the blink of an eye.

Lexa’s brows furrowed as she looked down at the girl, reprimanding her lightly for using her talent yet again so casually. They still had no idea how it actually worked and she was internally convinced that it could not be good for the girl to use it now, that she was so obviously already physically weakened.

Marie had already been given another tea before their brief dinner, so Lexa and Anya both thought nothing of it, when the child’s eyes began to droop only shortly later.

The rest of the journey continued in a similar fashion. Marie’s mood had turned whiny and bleak, the girl did obviously not understand why she was feeling so tired and exhausted all the time and the mere fact was frustrating her beyond measures, while Lexa’s and Anya’s worry only grew with each passing hour and no apparent positive change of the child’s constitution.

Clarke did unfortunately not have any luck in getting her mother on the way towards Polis; a kind of plague seemed to have broken out in Arkadia and Abby and Jackson had their hands full with trying to take care of all the sick people now, making it absolutely impossible for Abby to leave Arkadia currently. She had also suggested not to bring Marie there, in case the girl would catch whatever was going around in Arkadia, making her recovery for her already weakened body even harder. Abby had promised though to look into the medical file of Marie’s mother, researching again what exactly the woman had had and getting back in touch with them, once they reached the capitol. Clarke had already relayed all of the girl’s symptoms she had heard from Anya to her mother, so that the woman should be able to at least speculate if Marie could be suffering from whatever had ended her mother’s life.

~ ~ ~

The streets of Polis were already filled to the brim with its citizens once the group around the commander finally reached the gate to the inner ring of the capitol. A quicker messenger had already proclaimed the impending arrival of their leader, bringing back the queen from the North as a prisoner, heavily bound and gagged still.

The citizens cheered loudly for their leader and their cheers turned even up a notch when they could see queen Nia being brought into the capitol. For safety, the queen was surrounded on all sides by warriors, who had strict orders to immediately bring the woman into the dungeons of the tower, where she would be remaining until her execution.

Almost feverish whisperings broke out when the crowd noticed the presence of several Azgeda warriors and prince Roan among the group of generals and warriors, riding through the streets behind the commander. It was no wonder that the people were reacting in such a way, they could not know what their commander planned for Ice Nation now that the war was over and wars before often had ended with the near extinction of the losing clan. The last real wars had been fought to built the coalition, so how they would deal with a war now, was mostly speculation from this point onwards.

Marie had woken up only a few minutes before they reached Polis and her grey eyes flitted over the large crowd almost nervously, she was still freaked out by such a large gathering and she burrowed herself a little closer to Anya still, feeling her arms tighten around her in mute reassurance. She breathed a little easier once the tower loomed high in front of them and its base was visible as well, indicating that they had nearly reached their destination.

Her grey eyes kept on searching for Risha and she was disappointed to not spot the light grey wolf anywhere. She really hoped that Risha had not run away during their absence, they had been gone for a few days already after all. She would need to remember to ask Anya about trying to train at least one horse to accept Risha running beside it, she did not want for the wolf to have to be left behind each time they left the capitol in the future.

She tried forcefully to keep her attention ahead of them, all too aware of the queen riding only a few horses behind her. It was as if she could feel her dark eyes burning a hole through her back, even though she was leaning against Anya and was practically hidden from view like that.

Marie’s expression turned a little stonier when she noticed Titus’ form already waiting for their arrival at the entrance to the tower and judging from his expression, the bald man’s mood was not the best either, although Marie highly doubted that she would ever see the man actually smiling an honest smile. She did not believe that there were people who were actually physically incapable of being happy, but if someone like this were to exist, Titus would surely be an example of such an individual. She could not fathom what could have turned the man into such a bitter person, but she also was rather convinced that she actually did not wish to know either.

Lexa kept her expression mostly impassive as they rode into Polis, she inclined her head here and there in mute greeting and graciously accepted a few small trifles from some children who had obviously already been eagerly waiting for their return. She internally hoped that whoever parent of them had marched with the army into Ice Nation lands, would also be returning to them unharmed.

She had hurried the group of warriors around them towards the capitol, so that they had not covered the whole distance in two days. Lexa wanted for Marie to be able to lie down immediately, hopefully recovering from whatever was plaguing her body with some rest. She knew, that she would not be able to join the girl now, no matter how much she wished so. She was required to speak with Titus now, so that the man could prepare a meeting with the ambassadors first thing in the morning. The crowning of Roan to make him king of Ice Nation would need to be planned and of course Nia’s execution would need to be held as well. Tomorrow would be a day of resting and celebration in the streets of capitol and it could even stretch into two days. She would not let the execution take place before the rest of the army had reached the capitol as well, all warriors deserved the privilege to witness the queen’s death. She could also not officially crown Roan before their current leader was truly dead.

“I will be in the throne room in a moment” Lexa addressed Titus in a rather brisk tone, not caring one bit for the clear look of annoyance flashing over her former teacher’s features. The man nodded with a slight grimace and turned on his heels, vanishing back inside of the tower, before she had even dismounted.

Lexa stepped closer to Anya, still mounted on her hazelnut horse with their daughter in her arms, and she raised her arms up mutely, offering to take Marie down. She simply wished to physically hold the child for a moment, no matter how brief, before she would be swept up in her duties, probably for hours and easily lasting through the whole night as well.

Marie was a little confused at the commander’s insistence to be the one to personally help her from the horse, but she would certainly not be complaining about it either. She already knew that Lexa would surely have to organize a lot now and theoretically she should probably be standing beside her during such times, as being the commander’s second called for, but internally Marie hoped that Anya would allow her to retire now. She was just unable to get rid of this annoying encompassing fatigue, whenever she felt even remotely rested, it did only last for an hour or so, before she felt as drained as before.

“Should I come to the throne room too?” she asked in a low tone, keeping her hands resting on Lexa’s arms steadying her for now and her grey eyes clearly conveyed that she was hoping for a negative answer.

Marie suddenly felt the hairs on the back of her neck rise involuntarily and a shudder ran through her frame, when she felt the unmistakable weight of someone else’s gaze resting on her with an almost burning intensity. Beside knowing better, Marie glanced over her shoulder and she took in a sharp breath, when her eyes connected with the queen’s immediately, even though several paces still separated them. Her breath shuddered and remained stuck in her throat, she was physically unable to tear her eyes from the queen’s burning gaze, as if she was pinned in place by it. Beside the loud ringing noise resonating shrilly through her ears, Marie was unable to hear anything else and soon black spots began to cloud her vision.

Lexa’s green eyes widened when her gaze followed Marie’s quickly and she had to recognize the signs of the child falling into another panic attack.

Anya quickly dismounted as well when she realized what was going on and she barked an order at one of the warriors of her own unit to bring the queen into a cell already, removing her from open place as soon as possible. She stepped up behind Marie, efficiently blocking the girl’s view from the queen, who was already in the process of being pulled from the horse and non-too gently being escorted into the tower, vanishing from view all together in a few short moments.

“Breathe, little star” Lexa addressed the girl in a soft tone as she turned the child’s body to face herself again.

Marie’s breathing was nothing more than short erratic bursts now and no matter how hard she tried; she could not take deeper breaths anymore right now. Her grey eyes were wide and panicked as she looked up at Lexa.

 “Breathe” Lexa repeated, taking one of the girl’s hands and placing it flatly on her own stomach, hoping that the child could feel her body move regularly with each inhale and exhale she took, even through the layers of clothes which still covered her skin. “Breathe with me, Marie” she added and began to tell the girl when to inhale and exhale for long moments.

She did not care one bit that some of the generals were already shuffling their feet uncomfortably, unsure of how to react to such a scene playing out in front of their eyes. It was unfortunate that Marie was having a panic attack out in the open like that, but Lexa had already feared before that this occurrence had been inevitable sooner or later and she would not stand back and let the child suffer when she could help her, simply because her station would require her to do so. She was only glad that Titus had already returned into the tower, her former teacher would hear word of this rather soon, but she would not put it past the man to try to interfere actively if he had actually witnessed the scene himself.

Marie’s grey eyes visibly swam with unshed tears, when her breathing finally was remotely calm again. Although Anya, Ontari and Gustus had been blocking her and Lexa from most of the onlookers, she knew that she had just caused another scene and the disappointment at that, burned even stronger than the tears in her eyes.

Lexa squeezed the girl’s shoulders in mute reassurance and her gaze only held compassion as she gazed down at the child “It is alright, Marie” she soothed the girl, giving her shoulders another light squeeze. She would never hold a panic attack against the girl and she would surely not be angry about one either, she only hoped that Marie would soon recover enough to not have to suffer through any more episodes like that. Her reaction clearly showed that taking the girl with them into the fortress had never been a viable option, neither would it be good to have Marie witness Nia’s execution. Lexa was now utterly convinced that the girl simply had to remain in their quarters when the execution took place, she would not put the girl through any more suffering like that knowingly.

Marie sniffled slightly under her breath and she immediately leaned back against Anya, when she felt the general moving even closer towards her.

Lexa bandied a look with her former mentor mutely for a moment and she saw the same worry and compassion she felt coursing through her own mind being reflected in Anya’s brown eyes, before she said “I am expected in the throne room, bring her into our quarters and stay with her”.

Anya inclined her head in acknowledgement and her hands came to rest on Marie’s shoulders gently, giving the girl a little nudge to finally get moving in the direction of the entrance of the tower.

They stepped into the elevator together and Lexa was now more than ever annoyed at the fact that her duties required her immediate attention now, Marie’s eyes remained glued to the floor at her feet and her whole composure screamed at the fact of how miserable the child was feeling. Lexa wished for nothing more than to be able to take the girl into her arms, carry her into their quarters and curl up on the bed with the child, until she felt better again, but she could not do so now. She left the elevator on the throne room only begrudgingly and her gaze lingered on the blonde girl for long moments, searching for something to say to cheer the girl up, to make her smile even for a fleeting second, but when nothing came to her mind, as her thoughts were already focused on what needed to be done in the upcoming days, she stepped out of the elevator with a heavy sigh passing through her clenched teeth.

Marie let herself be led through the halls of the tower without saying a single word, tears still burned in her eyes and she wished to be able to go back in time for a few minutes and prevent herself from looking back at the queen at all. Her stomach was clenched painfully and made weird flipflops and she was sure that she would vomit again, if she had not done so already a few hours ago, there was simply nothing left in her body now to puke up.

Her bleak expression cleared somewhat when they entered the commander’s quarters and Risha leapt from the huge bed. The wolf’s tail wagged in greeting and the animal was obviously ecstatic to see its human, jumping around Marie for a few moments.

Marie fell onto her backside with a shrill shriek, when Risha suddenly jumped up and her heavy paws rested on her shoulders; there was no doubt any longer that the wolf had reached its maturity by now with the way how big and heavy the animal had grown. Marie’s shriek turned a series of giggles as Risha enthusiastically licked over her face in greeting.

Ontari remained in the background, watching the proceedings with a disgusted expression. Although she had truly grown used to the wolf’s presence by now, she was not one bit disappointed to not be greeted by the animal in such a fashion. The two of them had sort of reached the mute agreement that Ontari would occasionally even throw a piece of her meals at the animal when it behaved and kept its distance. She was alright with the wolf walking around her legs and she sometimes even let her fingers glide through its soft light grey fur, but Ontari had no intention to deepen their connection any way beyond that state.

Anya let Marie and Risha reconnect undisturbed for a few moments, stepping through the quarters and quickly disrobing of her armour. A quick glance into the bathroom of the commander’s quarters showed that beside dinner having been supplied already, a bath had also been drawn in preparation.

“Marie” she called out, waiting for the child to push Risha aside at least slightly “Come on, a bath has been drawn and after you have eaten something, you can rest” Anya explained, walking over to the girl and holding out a hand for her to grasp.

Marie took the offered hand while a smile remained on her features. She hoped that her stomach would have settled so far again after a bath that she would be able to actually stomach any food.

“Can you stay?” she asked Anya in a low tone and her grey eyes pleaded with the general. She knew that her feelings were irrational, Anya and Ontari would only be beyond the door to the bathroom, but somehow this was not enough now.

Anya sighed lightly under her breath, but nodded finally in agreement. She knew that the girl tended to be clingier than usual after a panic attack and the child had clearly been feeling off for days now. So, she gave the girl a soft smile and offered her a hand to help her climb into the bathing tube, before she sat down beside it, taking out the braids out of the girl’s hair. She truly hoped that whatever Clarke would learn from her mother about Marie’s condition, would not be life-threatening, the mere contemplation of losing the girl hurt much more than Anya ever thought possible.

 

Chapter 238

Marie fully enjoyed the feeling of being engulfed in the warm water of the bath and she felt her body lose its tension gradually, probably due to the various herbs she could see floating on the water.

Anya directed the child to lean forward after she took out her braids, intent on washing her hair and back for her. Her hand holding up a pitcher of water to wet Marie’s blonde hair with remained extended for long moments as she took in a slightly worried huff of air. The girl’s back seemed littered in bruises and she could not remember clearly at the moment if Marie had actually fallen on it at one point during the battle or where the bruises might be coming from. It was not really unreasonable to assume that the child could have acquired them during the battle somehow, none of them would have been able to keep watch of her nonstop after all.

“Marie" she addressed the girl in a kind tone, aiming to keep it light. It was obvious that the girl was frightened enough already to realize that something inexplicable was happening with her body and Anya did not wish to deepen this worry further. She waited until Marie tilted her head slightly upwards again, indicating that the child was indeed listening and had not already drifted off to sleep, to voice her actual question, inquiring in a soft tone if Marie could remember where the bruises on her back might have come from.

Marie’s brows furrowed in thought as she tried to remember everything clearly which had occurred since they left Polis. Her head began to hurt again with the effort of searching for a specific memory, to her great internal chagrin a lot of her memories just remained sort of hazy and stretches of time even seemed to be missing completely. With a sigh of utter frustration passing through her lips, Marie shook her head in the negative “I don’t know...” she breathed out whiny, while she internally began to panic over the simple fact that she was unable to remember. What if she was losing her memories again? Could that even happen like that? She knew that she had lost her memories before after falling from a tree and hitting her head, she had hit it again, so within her mind it sounded reasonable that it could be happening again now. She wondered if she should ask Lexa or Anya if they thought it was possible, but she knew that both women were already worried enough about her, so she did not want to make it even worse, deciding to keep her thoughts to herself instead.

“That is alright” Anya immediately tried to reassure the girl, when she noticed her body tensing again in the bath. She felt slightly guilty now for having asked at all. She lightly nudged the child forward again and actually began with her task of washing the child’s back and hair.

Marie let herself be handled by Anya without really contributing much. Internally her thoughts were running wild, whatever she was experiencing now did not feel like a simple cold, neither could it compare to how she had felt after the Mountain.

When Anya helped her out of the bath a few moments later, Marie already felt so tired again, that she was really relieved that the woman wordlessly began to help her dry off.

She smiled slightly when she spotted Ontari sitting on the couch, a slightly reluctant expression in her features, while Risha had obviously taken the chances of the only human being available right now and had placed her muzzle on the older girl’s legs, clearly expecting to be caressed by her, which Ontari only did obviously begrudgingly.

Ontari looked up at the sound of the bathroom door being opened and closed and she let her hands fall from the wolf’s grey fur “There" she said towards the animal, giving it a light nudge into Marie’s direction “your human has returned".

Ontari’s words pulled a little laugh from Marie’s tired mind and her grey eyes twinkled when she retorted “She likes you now, too".

Ontari’s lips thinned in mock displeasure and she added an exaggerated eye roll to it for good measures, she had come to terms with the wolf after all, but Marie’s reaction of laughing again at her antics made it worse to overreact right now.

Anya’s expression was grateful as her eyes connected with Ontari’s dark ones for a moment “Eat something now, before you fall asleep” she urged the blonde child in a kind but firm tone, aware that it could not be long before the exhaustion won out over Marie again.

~ ~ ~

The general’s prediction held more than true and Marie was soon experiencing troubles with keeping her head up. She had stopped eating anything moments ago already and her posture was slouched on the chair.

“Come on, Marie, time for bed” Anya addressed the girl and worry and compassion for the child coloured her tone. She stood from her own chair, coming to stand beside Marie and waited for the girl to stand up.

Marie shook her head in the negative, trying to shake off some of the fatigue. She wanted to be awake when Lexa returned to their quarters “Wanna wait for Mommy" she breathed out in a slight whine and her grey eyes were pleading with Anya, as she tilted her head backwards slightly to look up at the woman.

Anya sighed under her breath, she knew that it could take Lexa hours to return to their quarters before she had finished all the things which needed to be organized and delegated now. She did not like to have to tell Marie no now, but there was no way that the girl would manage to stay up so long at all. She mused about letting the child stay where she was and simply carry her over to the bed once she had fallen asleep, but she guessed that it would be better for Marie to lie down now and really get some rest.

“You need to rest, little star, Lexa will be there when you wake up" Anya reassured the girl in a gentle tone, placing her hands on her shoulders.

Marie twisted in the chair, raising her arms up mutely in Anya’s direction, a clear mute plea in her grey eyes.

Anya’s lips thinned slightly and her eyes narrowed for a moment.  When Marie’s expression turned even more pleading, she sighed under her breath, indulging the girl and simply picking her up. “You are aware that you are too old for this and are in the possession of two healthy legs" she said to the girl in an amused tone, tightening her arms around the girl’s smaller frame, as she carried her through the length of the room.

Marie only shrugged her shoulders while she slung her arms around Anya’s neck, a sweet smile on her lips as she breathed in the woman’s calming scent.

Anya shook her head at the child’s antics and the corners of her lips turned upwards in a smirk, brown eyes gentle as she let her chin rest on Marie’s head for a moment, sitting down on the edge of the bed with the girl still in her arms. Although Marie was unmistakably still clingy now, she at least did not appear to be upset any longer.

“You need to let go in order to lie down" Anya said in an amused tone, long moments after having sat down with Marie.

Marie only shook her head in the negative, burrowing herself even closer against Anya and wiggling around on her lap until she had found the most comfortable position, letting out a content sigh before her eyes fell close again.

Anya sighed lightly under her breath, scooting further on the bed with the girl in her arms, resigning herself to the fact that she did not want to have to push Marie away right now. There was no harm in letting the child fall asleep like this if she felt more comfortable in this position after all.

Ontari had watched the scene play out between Marie and the general in silence. She should not be surprised any longer of how gentle and loving the general was in handling the younger girl, she had seen the commander act in a similar fashion more than once by now as well, but somehow it still astounded her. She was powerless to stop her mind from thinking about what might have been if she had not been torn from her parents and delivered to Nia at such a young age, or if Nia could have been even remotely like the general was. Could she have been treated like this as well? Would she have been different then? Ontari knew that she in fact had definitely changed some of her views since she had been allowed to stay in the capitol, what she had once seen as a ridiculous charade from the commander, had now turned into a second chance which she had never even dared to think about. In all honesty, she had not even known that there could be a viable different way to what she was used to.

~ ~ ~

It took Lexa long after midnight to finally set foot out of the throne room again, feeling drained and exhausted. Much more things to solve had accumulated during the few days of absence from the capitol. No matter how hard she had tried, she had been utterly unable to completely focus on her duties at hand, a part of her mind always kept on wondering how Marie was doing. She had not liked it one bit to have to leave the child’s side so promptly after a panic attack.

She had not made it to the rest of the conclave yet either and she could imagine very well how worried the nightblood children would have been during her absence. With only Aden and Thalu remaining in the capitol as potential fighters for a conclave and both of them wounded in addition from their run in with the bandits, the two nightbloods were bound to have been tense the whole time and they would probably only be reassured by seeing her with their own eyes. She still remembered how her brothers and sisters and she had felt when their commander left the capitol with the intention to ride into a battlefield.

She really hoped that Anya had been able to take care of Marie on her own, not that she thought the general to be incapable of doing so, but Marie tended to be overly clingy after a breakdown and the last weeks had been more than exhausting for the blonde girl.

She also longed to finally get rid of the added weight of the commander’s regalia pressing down on her frame relentlessly. Lexa usually did not feel the weight so much, but her armour had also been modified with a layer of fur, so that she already could feel a layer of sweat clinging to her skin hidden by the thick layers of clothing.

Lexa’s steps got quicker once she stepped from the elevator on the top floor of the tower, each step finally carrying her closer to her daughter and the sanctuary her quarters usually were for her.

When the doors were pushed open for her, Lexa’s gaze shortly landed on Ontari, lying on the couch in a slouched position, as if the nightblood girl had fallen asleep sitting upright still. The fact that the girl was still dressed in the clothes which she had worn during their travels, confirmed that suspicion.

Directly upon her entry Lexa began to unbuckle her heavy shoulder pauldron, placing the piece of armour as silently as possible on an empty table. While she opened her coat, she turned towards the bed and the corners of her lips tilted upwards into the hint of a loving expression at the sight.

Anya had obviously also not really changed her clothes but had only removed the armour and boots from her body, lying on the bed now in her comfier underclothes, with Marie lying completely on top of the general’s body.

Marie’s head moved slightly with each breath that Anya took beneath her and Lexa remained standing in front of the bed for long moments, simply watching the two of them sleep. Thankfully it did not seem as if Marie had cried again from what she could tell with the girl’s eyes closed. Her young features were completely relaxed and her hands were holding onto Anya’s shirt beneath her.

Lexa breathed a little easier at the clear proof that the girl must have been well enough after their separation and she continued to undress quickly.

She cussed lightly under her breath, when she went through the room to blow out some of the candles which still burnt and stumbled over one of Marie’s boots, which had obviously been discarded in the way. Lexa barely managed to catch herself on one of the smaller tables, but whatever sounds she had made in the process had been enough to rouse Marie.

~ ~ ~

Marie woke to the sounds of whispered swearing and she blinked her eyes open quickly. She frowned for a moment when she noticed that she was practically lying on top of Anya, but she did not think further of the sleeping position when she looked up and spotted Lexa’s silhouette moving through the near darkness of the now mostly dark room.

“You’re back” she said enthusiastically all tiredness momentarily forgotten, while she noticed from the corners of her eyes how Anya grunted slightly under her breath and turned onto her back, facing away from her.

Lexa’s internal annoyance evaporated into nonexistence immediately and she gave the girl a slight smile, as she crossed the remaining distance to the bed and sat down on the edge of the mattress. She had barely sat down, before Marie had already scooted over and launched herself at her. Lexa’s smile grew into a loving expression, as she caught the girl “Yes, I am obviously back” she confirmed with amusement colouring her tone.

“No more meetings?” Marie asked, grey eyes looking up the commander hopefully in the dim light.

Lexa’s brows furrowed slightly “At least not for today” she answered. The following day was a day reserved for resting and even she was allowed that privilege after having returned from a victorious battle.

Marie’s own smile grew big at the news “So we’ll not leave this room like at all?” she asked eagerly.

“We shall see” Lexa answered vaguely; she had planned to at least make a short detour to the conclave, so that the nightblood children could truly that she was alright and had not been wounded during the battle.

Marie’s smell fell visibly and she opened her mouth to protest, but let it shut again, when she noticed how drawn Lexa appeared at the moment.

Lexa noticed the girl’s change of mood instantly, but she only mutely let one of her hands make a soothing circular motion over the girl’s back. She knew that it would not be long, before the sun rose again and although she theoretically should be able to sleep in for once, she knew that such plans rarely came into fruition.

Marie readily settled down on the bed again, this time lying in Lexa’s arms, absentmindedly twirling one of her brown locks around her fingers, as she waited to fall back asleep.

Lexa sighed when she noticed that the child was obviously much too awake now to actually fall back asleep, when her own body and mind just felt drained of all energy. It truly sank into her mind now that they finally would put an end to Nia’s reign with the woman’s execution. She had waited so long for this moment, that it felt surreal now.

For a moment she wondered how Costia would have reacted to the fact that she was finally getting revenge on her behalf as well, even if it only happened years later. But her first love had never been a vengeful woman, Costia would probably have more to say to the fact that she considered a child her daughter now, even if she only could so within her thoughts and within protected privacy, than to Nia’s downfall.

Lexa quitted her thoughts when she felt Marie shifting around almost restlessly and she pulled the girl a little closer, beginning to hum the melody of the lullaby to the girl in the hopes of relaxing her enough to fall asleep again. When she felt Marie’s body beginning to lose its tension only short moments later, she wondered if all children reacted so quickly to the simple soothing effects of a lullaby, but she had no experiences to compare Marie’s behaviour with.

~ ~ ~

The morning began as peaceful in a bizarre way as it possibly could have. On the rare days that Lexa’s presence was not required at dawn or where she had not scheduled a training session with the conclave before the sun rose, breakfast would only be brought to her, once she stood up and asked one of the guards to have it sent up. Besides the guards standing their posts at the doors to the commander’s quarters, the top level of the tower was deserted now, while Clarke resided with her people.

Ontari was actually the first one to wake and that with a rather loud and shrill squeal passing through her lips. Risha had stood in front of the couch, where the nightblood girl had still been sleeping and licked over her face.

Lexa and Anya both almost shot upright in the bed at the unexpected sound, while Marie let out a little whine at being woken in this fashion and burrowed herself deeper into the furs.

Ontari’s expression had switched between clear disgust as she looked down at the grey wolf and almost panicked apologetic so quickly that Anya could not contain herself and actually laughed out lout at the sight, her laughing turned even louder when Risha leapt forward again, nearly jumping into Ontari’s face.

“Uuhhggg, stop that!” Ontari demanded, trying to push the wolf away from herself, which only resulted in Risha licking at her fingers instead. “What do you want?” she breathed out; dark eyes narrowed at the wolf.

As if the animal actually understood her words, Risha backed off, trotting over to the door and turning back around, looking at her with an almost inquiring gaze burning within her icy blue eyes.

“Let her out” Lexa said to Ontari, trying to stifle her own amusement at the girl’s still mostly clueless way on how to interact with the wolf.

Ontari’s brows furrowed at the order, but she followed it regardless, while the frown remained on her face. She watched the wolf dart out of the room almost immediately, shaking her head slightly. She could definitely have done without being woken in such a fashion and she threw a slightly dark gaze towards Marie. All she could make out from the younger girl were some blonde locks peaking out under from a bunch of furs. Why the wolf had woken her and not just jumped on the bed was beyond her. She grimaced lightly when she noticed that she had completely neglected to change clothes last night, falling asleep on the couch while she had waited for Anya to return from the bed, which the general clearly had not at all.

“Tell the guards to have a bath prepared for you in our quarters” Anya spoke up in that moment; she had bathed last night with Marie already after all.

Ontari nodded mutely, she knew that she could already move over to the other room then as well. The preparation of a bath usually did not take that long after all.

“Time to wake up, little star” Lexa addressed the younger girl, unable to make out the girl’s features hidden beneath all the furs. A smile tugged at her lips at the sight of the girl looking almost cocooned into them.

Marie shook her head in the negative, barely visible to Lexa and Anya, only curling herself together a little tighter.

Lexa and Anya bandied a non-impressed look mutely for a moment and the glint within Anya’s brown eyes was unmistakable as the older woman bent over, quickly pulling the furs off of Marie’s body.

Marie’s clear put turned into shrill shrieks of laughter as Lexa and Anya both bent over and attacked the girl with tickling hands from the side.

“Stop…!” she breathed out with great difficulty, trying to move away from both women.

“Are you going to stand up now?” Anya asked with a slightly raised brow.

Marie’s surrender dropped quickly as she cheekily shook her head in the negative.

“Is that so?” Lexa questioned; green eyes shining with amusement, as she renewed her efforts to tickle the girl.

“I surrender…surrender” Marie brought out a few moments later, almost out of breath and a few tears had trickled down her cheeks “Love you” she said, addressing both women likewise and letting herself sink down on the mattress again between them.

“Oh no, little star, up with you” Anya said, a little strictness underlined her tone now, although her brown eyes were still soft as she lightly nudged the girl to sit up again.

Marie pouted lightly and with an overly dramatic huff, she sat up again, only to actually yawn as soon as she truly was sitting upright and her carefree expression dimmed as a frown took over her features. She had felt totally rested moments ago and now she felt again as if she could use some more sleep.

Lexa and Anya bandied a worried gaze over Marie’s head, both hoping internally that Clarke would soon show up and tell them that Marie hopefully was not suffering from anything incurable.

 

Chapter 239

While Marie was alone in the bathroom, getting ready for the day, although quiet reluctantly at that, Anya told Lexa about the bruising which she had observed on the girl’s body the previous evening while helping her bath.

Lexa’s brows visibly furrowed as she tried to remember if she had seen the girl fall on her back during the battle or having been pushed over from behind. She guessed that it was possible that the girl’s body could have also connected harshly with the cold frozen ground while losing consciousness, although Lexa knew that she had tried to catch the girl, she could not deny the chances that it could have caused bruising. They also had not been there when Marie had played hide and seek with the children from the village, the girl could have tripped and fallen then. She regarded it as unlikely that Marie would have told them about it happening with the way they had already doted over her apparent head wound. But somehow a doubt remained in her mind that the girl’s bruising had been caused by a physical impact. They had kept so close watch over the girl that one of them should have noticed, but on the other hand the battle had been hectic, like all fights were, and it had happened all so quickly as well. But what else could cause bruising like this to suddenly appear without any cause? It did not astound her that Marie did not remember of where the bruises might have come from, the girl’s mind had probably been overwhelmed with the whole situation already and her head injury would have only worsened the matter for sure. She would need to ask Clarke if whatever they assumed could be wrong with Marie, could also explain the bruising on the child’s skin. She really hoped that Clarke would send word soon, the uncertainty of not knowing what could actually be wrong with their daughter’s health was nerve wrecking and Lexa was sure that Anya would be feeling in a similar fashion.

When Marie returned from the bathroom, Lexa was quick to ban the worry from her expression. It was obvious that the girl was already unsettled by what was going on and she did not wish to add on to that in any form.

Marie smiled slightly, as she stepped over to the table. During her brief time in the bathroom, Alira had been inside of the commander’s quarters and obviously had delivered breakfast for them. “Where’s Ontari?” she asked, looking around the huge room shortly, but unable to spot the older girl.

“Bathing” Anya answered easily, giving the girl a pointed look to sit down and to begin with her tea. It still remained a slight struggle to convince the girl that the tea to settle her stomach was needed before every intake of food. Anya wondered now if the girl’s constant upset stomach could be another symptom that something was wrong with her general health and they might have simply overlooked it so far.

Marie nodded with an innocent expression plastered onto her featured, trying her best to ignore the general’s pointed look, although she had of course noticed it.

Lexa watched the girl’s attempts at getting around of drinking her obviously hated tea with veiled amusement; she decided to step in, when she noticed how Anya’s patience with the girl’s antics was waning quickly and she lightly tapped against the mug “Drink up, Marie” she added, voice still soft and kind, while her expression had turned solemn again.

Marie’s lips turned into a pout for a moment, but when she looked at Anya and only received a light glare in reaction, she sighed in obvious defeat and picked up the tea, gulping it down as fast as possible, wanting to get rid of the taste quicker like this. Her smile returned visibly, when she noticed a few of the small honey cakes which she enjoyed so much, sitting close to her plate, obviously just waiting to be devoured by her. She had never seen Lexa or Anya eat any from the sweet pastries after all, so she knew very well that Alira only supplied them for her sake, but she could not remember if she had ever thanked the handmaid so far, she would do so, when she saw her next.

~ ~ ~

In the meantime, Clarke was waiting for her mother to react to her contact attempts through the radio. She had begun pacing up and down the length of the room, trying to ignore Raven, sitting casually on the bed and clearly being annoyed by her pacing. Clarke knew that it was entirely possible that she would have to be the one to break the news to Lexa and Anya, in case that Marie suffered from the same condition as the child’s mother had died from. If her own mother had been unable to save Marie’s mother back on the Ark, it would be literally impossible for Abby to save the child now. She could only hope now, that her mother would say that the symptoms were not matching at all and that Marie should be examined more in depth at Arkadia, once they had their plague under control again. The plague was also the main reason why the delegation from Skykru had agreed to remain within the capitol, the risk of even more people catching the weird disease would be too great.

“Clarke, for god’s sake can you stop with the pacing!” Raven exclaimed in exasperation. Her blonde friend had been all tense since getting up from bed this morning. Clarke had told her already that this was about Marie again and she internally wondered if the child truly could not catch a break from trouble at all for some time. The girl had suffered through so much, much more than the most of them had by now, it was unfair to think that fates could be so bleak for her that she might be facing a terminal illness now. Clarke had said that it had not taken very long for Marie’s mother to die from her disease and it would probably be hard to assess how far the girl had already progressed in it.

Clarke whirled around with a grimace on her features “What if she is going to die?” she retorted, beginning to pace again immediately. She knew that this kind of news would surely crush Lexa and Anya, both women had mourned the girl greatly already when they had thought her lost before. Having gotten their daughter back, only to lose her now for sure, Clarke could not fathom if Lexa would survive such a loss.

Raven’s annoyance faded with a deep sigh, although she had never gotten to know the young girl from the Ark very well, it was clear that the child had found a family here and she would dearly be missed. But the rational part of her mind knew, that there was nothing they could do, if the girl was truly suffering from a terminal illness. “She will die then” she answered in a calm tone, for once there was no joke, she could think off which would make the situation any easier.

Clarke huffed under her breath, mouth already opened to retort, blue eyes blazing slightly, when the radio within her hand came to life suddenly and her mother’s voice resonated from it loudly, making her jump in place in surprise. She quickly took the radio closer to her mouth “Hello, mother” she answered her mother’s call “What have you found in the medical files about Marie’s mother?”

The connection rang silent for a moment and it seemed as if Abby was taking a deep breath, before her voice sounded again from the radio “I have looked through the files and her mother died from leukaemia and a very aggressive form at that. It progresses quickly and there is very little I can do. We do not have access to a real cure any longer. We could try chemotherapy, but if she is exhibiting the symptoms already for some time, it is unfortunately likely that it might have progressed too far and her body will be too weakened to deal with the added stress of such a harsh treatment.”

Clarke’s eyes widened with every further word her mother spoke and she felt her heart drop into her stomach at the realization that Marie was indeed likely in the process of dying already. She felt tears burn within her eyes and her voice shook as she raised the radio higher again to her mouth “How high are the chances of a treatment working?” she asked, fervently hoping that there would be chances for the young girl to get better again.

The connection stayed silent for a moment as if Abby was contemplating her answer carefully for some time, before her voice resonated from the radio again “I cannot give you an absolute number, Clarke, you know enough about medicines to know that this is not possible. I would need to see Marie myself and be able to take a closer look at her. With the plague still not under control, bringing her here if it really is leukaemia would be almost certainly her death warrant, if she catches the plague in addition. You can take another look at Marie yourself; you have not mentioned that she shows signs of fatigue and had nosebleeds without promptings. But there are other symptoms, such as easy bruising, infections, pains, excessive sweating or even recurring infections. Has she shown anything of those as well?”

Clarke furrowed her brows in thought, trying to remember word for word what Anya had told her and she sighed in frustration when she could not remember anything else. She would have to speak with Lexa and Anya again, before she even mentioned her mother’s suspicion. She did not wish to throw them into a panic, maybe the girl was having something else entirely. She would need to hope that her mother was somehow wrong about all of this, she could not accept that there was nothing which they could do to help the child. “I do not know, I will have to ask Lexa and Anya again, if they have observed anything else” she finally said, frustration colouring her tone strongly.

Clarke finished the talk with her mother quickly, feeling herself mentally unable to talk to her now. Her thoughts were already running wild with how she should choose her words when she faced Lexa and Anya. She had hoped that once they returned from the north, she would find the chance to talk to Lexa about them, trying to reconcile with the brunette leader, who still owned her heart. But she would definitely not try to talk to her now, Lexa would be worried enough about her daughter now and she would not cause her more hurt by trying to force herself back on her.

Raven watched Clarke for a few moments, taking in her slouched shoulders and the way her blue eyes swam in tears. She reached out and placed a hand over hers, giving them a squeeze.

“How should I tell them that Marie, who by all rights is seen as a daughter by them, is dying…?” Clarke asked, voice heavy and shaking, as she looked down at Raven’s hand.

Raven did not know what to say at all to Clarke, she had no advice to give to her, so she only pulled her into a hug, hoping that this would be enough for now.

~ ~ ~

Clarke had remained with Raven for some time, trying to find the courage to march up to the top floor of the tower and tell the commander and the general, what they deserved to know. She really hoped that someone else could have told them, but there was no one else to do it.

She had been told from one of the guards that the commander was expected to remain within her quarters for most of the day, as the day directly following on a battle was reserved to solely resting. So, she knew that she would find both women in the commander’s quarters. But she was fairly certain that Marie would be with them, it was doubtful that they would leave the child out of their sight willingly now, and she did definitely not wish for the girl to be present during their needed conversation.

She hesitated in front of the doors to the commander’s quarters for long moments and luck seemed to be on her side for once. The door to Anya’s quarters was opened behind her and Clarke could over her shoulder see Ontari stepping out of it, walking in her direction.

“You need to do me a favour, Ontari” she addressed the nightblood girl, as soon as she was in hearing distance, keeping her tone low, hoping that it would not filter through the doors and into the commander’s quarters.

Ontari stopped slightly behind Wanheda, a brow raised in mute question. She could not think of anything which the healer could wish for her to do right now and she was astounded to be asked anything from her at all, they had never had much contact to begin with after all. But she immediately began to wonder if Wanheda was actually there in her function as a healer and if this had something to do with Marie. She had heard from Anya that they wanted to find out if the younger girl’s overly tiredness was actually caused by a disease.

“I need to speak with Lexa and Anya in private about Marie” Clarke told the nightblood girl bluntly, hoping that the girl was less likely to deny her request if she was honest about her reasons.

Ontari’s brows furrowed and a slightly dark look settled onto her features, she noted now how the healer’s blue eyes were red-rimmed and she could already imagine what the woman wanted to talk about. Her stomach clenched painfully, as she nodded in agreement that she understood.

Clarke inclined her head as well, a grateful expression flitted over her features before they turned solemn again, with the knowledge of what she had to do now.

Ontari tried to muster an expression onto her features which at least remotely resembled honest joy, as she proceeded Wanheda into the commander’s quarters. Her heart grew heavier at the sight of the scene into which they had intruded.

Marie was still having breakfast with the two women, but for some unknown reason the child was actually sitting on the commander’s lap, clearly more than comfortable with her position. A huge book had been placed on the table in front of them and Lexa seemed to have been reading something together with Marie, but she had fallen silent as soon as the doors had been opened.

“Would you like to go and see how your horse and the foal are doing?” Ontari spoke up in a kind tone, looking at Marie expectantly.

Marie seemed visibly confused by the offer and her head tilted to the side slightly as she contemplated the option for a moment. She felt absolutely comfortable right where she was, but she had also not thought about the wounded horse and the foal yet and she was curious to see how the horse was doing as well.

Lexa gave the girl a light nudge to stand up from her lap again. She did not know yet what was going on but it was obvious that Ontari was asking to escort Marie away for now and Clarke’s presence behind the nightblood girl already eluded to the fact that she must have spoken to her mother. “I will still be here later” she encouraged the child to follow Ontari, keeping her tone soft and gentle, although she felt her thoughts running wild already internally. If Clarke wished to speak with them without Marie being present, the child’s constitution must be more severe than they had hoped.

“But we’ll continue to read afterwards, right?” Marie turned back to face Lexa slightly, grey eyes hopeful and voice pleading.

Lexa gave the girl a soft smile, squeezing her shoulders once “Of course, little start” she assured her, before giving her another nudge to move into Ontari’s direction. Her eyes remained hefted onto Marie, as the blonde child stepped up to Ontari, willingly walking out of the rooms with her. Only when the doors had been closed again behind both girls and she heard their steps getting lower as they moved towards the elevator, did she turn her eyes to Clarke. Lexa held her breath in anticipation, internally preparing herself for the bad news which she now surely expected to hear.

Clarke’s eyes shortly flitted between Anya and Lexa before she hesitantly sat down in one of the empty chairs around the table, fiddling with her fingers for another moment, before she breathed out a deep sigh, looking up again between them “I have spoken to my mother about Marie in the morning” she began.

Anya and Lexa both subtly inclined their head, their attention focused intently on the blonde healer.

“Have you seen anything else beside fatigue and nosebleeds?” Clarke asked, deciding to wait first if they had observed more symptoms. Her eyes shortly stayed on the now drained cup from Marie. Could the girl’s upset stomach be caused by a persistent infection and not just her nerves?

Anya and Lexa shortly bandied a look, before the general answered the actual question “I have seen last night that her back is bruised. But she cannot remember where the bruises came from”.

Clarke’s expression fell visibly, remembering that bruising was also a clear sign of leukaemia.

Anya’s brows furrowed at the open reaction and she quickly tried to justify “She could have aqcuired the bruising during the war or when she played with the village children…” her voice trailed off when Clarke shook her head and she felt the blood freeze in her veins at the clear hopelessness shining within the healer’s blue eyes now.

“My mother has looked into what disease has caused Marie’s mother to die and it was leukaemia” Clarke explained in a grave tone, feeling a painful tug in her stomach.

Looks of deep confusion settled onto Lexa’s and Anya’s features likewise, as both had never even heard this word before and were absolutely clueless as to what it could mean.

Clarke sighed as a slightly apologetic look crossed her features “It is basically a disease of the blood. Certain cell types in her blood are ceasing their function.”

“Is that treatable?” Lexa asked immediately, green eyes widened slightly and voice noticeably higher than normal, hoping fervently for a positive answer.

Clarke grimaced slightly, deciding to remain as honest as possible “My mother said that Marie’s mother died of the most aggressive form. It progresses quickly, too quickly for an efficient treatment. There are treatments, yes, but the chances are very high that they will not do anything to prolong Marie’s life, but only cause her suffering. The treatments are harsh, very harsh on the body in fact”.

Lexa felt as if someone had torn her heart out of her chest and ripped it into tiny pieces, leaving her hurting, bleeding and empty. She looked over at her former mentor and found Anya’s features stony and frozen, brown eyes glistening with unshed tears.

“That cannot be true” Anya finally breathed out, tone hard and unbelieving.

Clarke swallowed forcefully “To know for sure, I would need to take a blood sample from her and have my mother analyse it. The symptoms fit so far, but it is possible that this is caused by something else entirely.”

Lexa felt her heart beating far too quickly within her chest, feeling it contract painfully with each beat. How should they survive to see Marie dying a probably slow and painful death like that “How long?” she breathed out through clenched teeth, trying to keep her composure together.

Clarke’s grimace intensified “That depends on the exact form and how far it already is progressed” she answered as honestly as possible.

Lexa was clearly unsatisfied with the vague answer “Years? Months? Weeks?” she pressed for a more definite answer, tone growing impatient.

Clarke sighed again “I really cannot say, Lexa, I wish I could. But if it is truly leukaemia, years are highly unlikely. Her body will get weaker quickly. It could sadly only be a few weeks or months…”

Anya sucked in a harsh breath, while Clarke’s words replayed within her mind for a few moments, as the realization sunk in that their daughter could by dying so shortly and there was absolutely nothing, they could do about it. If it had been a physical opponent threatening their daughter’s life, they could have fought another battle for her, but they were powerless to battle a disease. They would be forced to sit back and watch the girl die. As this particular thought crossed her mind, Anya could not face it for the moment, standing up from her chair abruptly, not even caring that she had stood up so briskly that her chair fell over, before she stormed out of the room with fast strides.

Lexa watched the older woman flee from her quarters with sadness glistening in her green eyes, she felt as if all strength had been drained from her body and she knew that she would not be able to win against her tears for long. She inclined her head towards Clarke “You can draw a blood sample from her later” she forced the words from her mouth, keeping her tone as steady as possible.

“Lexa…” Clarke tried to address the brunette, but she was cut off.

“Leave” Lexa commanded and authority underlined her tone, trying to keep her composure together for a moment longer.

Clarke looked slightly hurt to be ordered to leave in such a fashion, but she inclined her head in acknowledgement. She would accept Lexa’s wishes for now, although she felt anything but leaving her alone.

Lexa watched the blonde healer leave her quarters visibly begrudgingly and she already felt the first tear falling down her cheek, before the doors fell closed behind Clarke and a strangled sob escaped her throat as she lost her composure completely.

 

Chapter 240

Ontari did not have a hard time at keeping Marie’s attention diverted, the younger girl seemed almost ecstatic as soon as they neared the stables and a large grin was plastered onto her young features.

What worried her though was that she could basically see a bruise form beneath Marie’s fair skin after the girl had stumbled and she had reached out quickly to steady her. The place where her fingers had closed quickly around the younger girl’s shoulder was already visibly bruising up in front of her eyes. She tried to keep her own mood as convincingly positive as possible and it seemed that she was succeeding at it as well. Ontari had no way of knowing just what kind of news Wanheda would have brought to the commander and the general about their second, but she knew that it would not be her place to speak with Marie about it either. The two women would need to decide on what to tell the blonde girl and when they intended to do so. Maybe there would need to be done some sort of tests before Wanheda even knew for sure what was wrong with Marie after all and she did not wish for Marie to worry over nothing now. So, keeping the girl happy and her attention diverted seemed like the best course of action for now.

Marie smiled brightly when they entered the stables and the commander’s horses and Anya’s mare immediately looked over their stalls, neighing happily in greeting to the girl as well. She came to a halt at Skairasha’s stall, peering into it quickly and her smile widened when she saw the foal standing slightly behind the white mare.

“It has grown already” Marie exclaimed in wonder, grey eyes shining as she threw a glance over her shoulder at Ontari.

“Of course, it did” Ontari retorted with a slight frown. Young animals usually grew quick, the longer they were young and small, the longer they were vulnerable to other predators after all.

Marie’s eyes narrowed at the older girl for a split second, before her surge of annoyance at Ontari’s non-impressed reaction vanished, as the foal had walked over to her and butted its head against her outstretched hand. “Hey, little one” she greeted the young horse in a soft tone “You remember me, don’t you?” she asked with a smile, as she let her fingers glide over its soft nose for a few moments. Her joy dwindled a bit, when the foal moved away and out of her reach all too quickly as well, but she continued to watch it move through the stall for a moment, coming to a halt beside its mother again and beginning to drink.

“Did you not want to see the other horse as well?” Ontari addressed the younger girl in a nonchalant tone, leaning against one of the posts casually as she waited to move on.

Marie nodded in agreement, tearing her gaze from Skairasha and her foal. She still had to settle on a name for the foal though and somehow after Anya had told her that Muffin was not really considered as a fitting name for a war horse, she found the name lacking now as well, but she could not think of a more fitting one either at the moment.

The mutated horse with the broken leg still stood in a single stall at the far end of the stables and it also immediately neighed when Marie neared the stall. The two pair of ears flicked around for a moment until they turned upwards, as if to catch the girl’s muffled steps moving towards its direction.

“Hey” Marie greeted the horse and it seemed as if it was answering her greeting with a sort of a deep hum, sniffing at her hand for a moment.

Ontari watched the horse flicker around its head for a few moments but curiously its movements seemed solely restricted to the upper part of its body and it seemed to keep its legs obediently still. She still though that the horse was acting weird and uncharacteristic, but she had to admit that it was a magnificent creature. The pale blue eye staring right ahead, between the normal pair of dark eyes, was a little unsettling though, it felt almost as if the animal could look right through you with its penetrating gaze.

“Have you been good?” Marie asked the horse in a playful tone, letting her fingers scratch at its nose lightly.

“Exceptionally” a dark voice suddenly resonated from behind them and Marie visibly jumped in her place at being startled like that.

The dark horse had flattened its ears in a clearly threatening way and its breathing seemed to have gotten erratic.

Ontari watched with a perplexed frown how the horse seemed to relax again the very minute that Marie had recognized the stablemaster as a harmless threat and the younger girl’s composure had relaxed as a slightly sheepish expression crossed over her features.

It was obvious that the younger girl was a little lost for words now, but she was saved from having to come up with an answer, by other footsteps nearing them loudly.

Ontari’s frown deepened and she felt worry coil in the pit of her stomach as her gaze landed on the general, approaching them with fast strides and the woman’s expression was a mixture out of outwards calmness, belied already be the storm of emotion raging through her brown eyes.

Marie did not seem to notice the same at the moment, too focused still on the horse’s reaction, who had begun to act up again at the additional arrival of someone else in the stables. She only smiled brightly at the general, giving the horse one last pat before moving away from the stall and coming to stand in front of Anya, looking up at the woman expectedly.

~ ~ ~

Anya had left the commander’s quarters in a frenzy and her thoughts had been running wild within her mind. She refused to believe the truth in Clarke’s words and she kept on hoping that the blonde healer was mistaken, she had said herself after all that a blood sample of the child would need to be analysed to know for sure. It was still entirely possible that Clarke’s mother was wrong. Simply because the symptoms were matching, at least slightly, that could not have to be the only explanation for them. The girl was bound to have been exhausted after all that she had been through during the last months. Maybe she had in fact hit her face during training to cause her nosebleeds and she had simply not noticed. Her mind refused to think about the fact that Marie should have shown bruises on her face then, she had to cling to the small fleeting hope of another explanation. Marie was not allowed to be dying, not after everything that they she had been put through. The girl still had so much to learn, so much to see still, she had barely seen anything of their world yet besides violence and war. The child deserved the world and the thought that her time could already be running out, was nearly unbearable. Anya felt like screaming at the injustice of it all, but she sadly knew that it would not change a single thing. She felt powerless, powerless and unbelievably angry at the fates itself. Giving in to her anger coursing hotly through her veins, just needing to let it out somehow, Anya stopped in her vast tracks, turning and punching her fist harshly against the wall of the hall in which she had come to an abrupt stop.

She had left the commander’s quarters using the stairs instead of the elevator and she had not really paid any mind to where exactly her feet had been carrying her at all. When she glanced around she was met with the clearly uneasy expression of a few guards standing post across the hall. They were throwing each other unsettled looks, shifting restlessly on their feet, not knowing on how to react to her right now.

Anya’s brown eyes narrowed dangerously at them, but she did not utter a single word. The hand which she had slammed into the stone wall pulsed in sync with her heartbeat and the pain now registering within her mind grounded her thoughts back into the reality of the presence. The sudden urge to go and actually be with Marie now settled in her mind and she turned on her heel abruptly, storming back to the elevator, which would be faster in bringing her down to the basement of the tower and by thus closer to her daughter. She could only hope now that Ontari had actually brought the younger girl into the stables as her words had implied, but she doubted that the nightblood girl would be irresponsible enough to do otherwise. She knew that having to search for Marie right now, would only test her already bleak mood, she just needed to see the child now. Seeing with her own eyes that the girl was in fact still there and reasonably healthy as well.

The child had been relaxed and happy even during breakfast and a content expression had been constantly plastered onto her young face. Did someone who was suffering from a deadly disease look this happy? Anya shook the thought from her mind forcefully, as soon as it had taken hold.

She had reached the stables by now and by the way with which everyone had nearly jumped out of her path, she knew well enough that her expression must have reflected the stormy emotions still coursing relentlessly through her mind. So, she pulled herself to a stop at the entrance of the stables, inhaling a few times, taking in the scent of the straw, mixed with the horses', hearing their regular breaths and their movements as soon of them shifted around.

At the end of the row of the stalls her eyes fell on Ontari standing slightly behind Marie, who was obviously speaking to the mutated horse which had only been saved for her sake alone. She began walking abruptly again, when she saw the blonde girl making a slight jump when she was startled by the stables master’s sudden appearance behind herself.

She felt some of her dark thoughts stop when Marie’s grey eyes connected with her own only a moment later and she forced the resemblance of a smile onto her face. She felt calmed slightly by the proof that Marie was here and alive in the presence. She could not completely quit the thoughts telling her harshly and loudly that the girl could very well be dying already in front of their eyes at this moment, but she knew that she needed to accept that there would probably be nothing they could do to change that fact if it truly was the case even. She would ask Clarke to speak again about this treatment options which the blonde healer had mentioned. If there was even the slightest chance of them saving the girl, however slim, they would need to try and she was certain that Lexa would agree as well. She had to believe that the child was strong enough to overcome this as well, she had been put through hell more than once in her short life already and she had somehow survived, so why should she not be able to battle with whatever disease this was and be able to come out of it alive and stronger afterwards? All of them would be with the girl on every step on the way, however that might look like in the future.

The child’s almost hesitant voice pulled her out of her thoughts immediately.

“Did something happen?” Marie asked, grey eyes staring up at Anya intently, unnerved by the woman’s continued unusual silence. She sensed that something must be wrong, but she did not know what it could be right now. For a moment the absurd thought of Nia somehow managing to get free crossed her mind and she felt her stomach coil in fright. That could not be true, right?

Anya shook her head slightly, trying to clear it finally of all of her dark thoughts and she gave the child a tight smile.

Marie frowned, not convinced at all at the denial. Anya’s mood had definitely been better before she had left the commander’s quarters with Ontari some time ago, so something must have occurred between now and then. When Anya continued to remain silent and her stare felt uncharacteristically unnerving, Marie frowned even deeper, it almost seemed as if the general was waiting for some kind of reaction from her. “Did something happen with the queen...?” she finally mustered the courage to ask, tone quivering noticeably and chest tightening slightly.

Anya’s brown eyes widened at the girl’s train of thought and she felt a definite surge of guilt course through her mind at the apparent fear showing in Marie’s expression. “No, of course not" she denied the mere implication in a forceful tone, but kept her expression as gentle and open as possible not wanting to worry the girl even further.

Marie’s frown lessened only a little “Has Clarke left?” she prodded; head tilted to the side a little bit.

Anya nodded in agreement; she was fairly certain that Lexa would have sent the blonde healer away by now. “Come" she said to both girls likewise, turning on her heel and expecting them to follow her.

Ontari followed the general without any hesitation, while Marie remained frozen for a second, internally still wondering just what might have upset the general in the first place.

When Anya failed to hear Marie following as well, she stopped in her tracks only slightly down the row of stalls, turning back around slightly and extending a hand expectantly towards the girl.

Marie’s frown disappeared finally, as a smile lightened up her features and she quickly caught up with Ontari and the general. She took hold of the general’s outstretched hand before the woman could retract it again and only gave her a sheepish look when Anya raised a brow in mute question.

Anya let her fingers close around Marie’s smaller hand, not wanting to deny the girl the simple comfort of such an easy touch. Her throat tightened as the thought flashed through her mind that they might not have many chances left to spent such moments with their daughter and should probably be making the best of them altogether.

~ ~ ~

Marie’s mood was still rather good when they returned to the commander’s quarters, but she paused in her step, looking around for Lexa and failed to locate the woman in the big room. A pout settled onto her lips “She promised that there would be no meetings today" she exclaimed in a whiny tone, looking back at Anya with accusatory grey eyes.

Anya narrowed her eyes at the girl’s antics for a moment, wondering herself just where Lexa might be. She should probably not have stormed out of the room in the fashion that she had, but she had simply needed space for a few moments to let her mind possess what they had been told by Clarke. She felt slightly guilty now for having left her former second alone like that, the brunette would have been hit as hard by the news as she had been after all. She wondered if Lexa might have even reconciled with Clarke in these emotional times, but she somehow doubted that to be the case.

“No meetings were scheduled for today, but Lexa could have gone to see the conclave” Anya finally answered after a moment of silence. She knew that Lexa had not had the chance to see the nightblood children yet since their return and she usually took the time to reassure her charges of her continued health by paying them a short visit after a time of absence from the capitol.

Marie huffed under her breath, as a little of her apparent annoyance left her system. She would have liked to see the other nightblood children as well, she considered them her friends after all and she wanted to know how Aden and June were doing, as both had still been injured when they had left Polis.

“What do you want to do, little star?” Anya asked the girl, giving her a soft look.

Marie tilted her head to the side slightly, looking up at the woman inquiringly. She could not remember if Anya ever had asked her this directly after what she wanted to do; it was usually Lexa who took more into account what she wished to do. Anya normally was mostly all about the necessity of certain lectures and lessons that she still had to learn, as so much of the world on earth was still slightly alien to her. The only problem now was that she actually did not really feel like doing anything at the moment. She felt the energy draining already from her body and the best thing she could imagine right now would be curling together with Lexa on one of the big arm chairs and listening to her reading something to her in her soothing tone. She would probably fall asleep soon after, but she had enjoyed those times the best when the commander had had a few free hours and spent them solely with her in the quietness of their rooms.

She frowned slightly, Anya had only very rarely read a book to her and in the instances that the woman had agreed to do so, she had either been sick or wounded. Otherwise the general would have just passed her a book containing actual knowledge or repeated a lesson with her.

The book which Lexa had begun to read to her was still lying opened and abandoned on the table where they had used it together after breakfast and Marie glanced at it for a moment.

Anya caught the girl’s almost longing glance and sighed lightly under her breath. She still could not fathom why the girl even enjoyed it so much to have someone else read something to her, when she could just read it herself.

“I can certainly read a few pages to you until Lexa returns” she finally offered after a longer moment of silence.

Marie did not seem really impressed with the offer and tilted her head to the side slightly, actually turning to Ontari with an inquiring gaze “You can read to me instead” she said, grey eyes hopeful.

Anya’s brows furrowed, utterly astounded that the child was clearly declining her offer and although she would not admit it, she felt slightly affronted by Marie obviously preferring Ontari right now and she could not understand why that was the case either way. “I’ll certainly not offer again” she proclaimed, her lips thinning slightly.

Marie’s grey eyes widened a little when she realized that she must have actually insulted the general that way “I had not meant it like that” she immediately defended herself “But you got to do the voices” she added with importance in her tone.

“The voices?” Anya echoed questioningly with a raised brow, not understanding at all what the blonde girl meant right now at all.

“Yeah, the voices” Marie repeated, as if that would explain everything easily.

Ontari tried to stifle the laugh wanting to escape past her lips, she knew exactly to what Marie was eluding after all. The younger girl had bugged her so long that she had finally given in and also tried to mimic the voices of the characters in the book to match how Marie wanted them to. She had found the idea ridiculous back then and it would certainly be a sight to watch the general having to attempt the same.

“You will have to explain that more, Marie” Anya huffed in rising exasperation. She actually wanted to indulge the child now in every way possible, but she truly did not know what the girl wanted her to do.

Marie sighed dramatically and actually rolled her eyes at the clearly clueless woman. She did not understand what there was not to understand about her request, Anya had sat beside her and Lexa in the morning after all, so she should know in her opinion.

She did not want to sit down at the table now, so she walked over to the table and took up the book, heading over to the bigger couch and waiting for Anya to sit down beside her. Her look turned a little dark when she noticed Ontari hiding her amusement at the general’s cluelessness.

Anya sighed again under her breath, but willingly sat down next to the girl, who immediately scooted closer, even climbing into her lap as if it was the most natural thing. She felt her heart tighten painfully as she let an arm snake around the girl, trying to balance the opened book in her other hand. When she began to read, Marie continued to criticize her way until she got it correct in the girl’s mind and Anya readily let herself be corrected by the girl for now. Wondering again just how many of those quiet moments they would even have with Marie. Her sudden melancholia turned into worry again, when the girl began to drift off, lying in her arms obviously completely content and relaxed, only a few moments later, she had barely read more than three pages to Marie. Careful not to wake the girl, Anya closed the book silently and let it glide onto the couch beside them, bringing the girl even closer to her and letting her chin rest lightly on the girl’s head. She tightened her arms around Marie’s smaller body – she had never even thought it possible to gain a daughter and certainly not from a previously opposing clan – and she felt tears burn in her eyes as the thought slammed back into her mind that the girl could be ripped from their arms so soon now, without them being able to help her in any form.

 

 

 

 

 

Chapter 25: Chapter 241 - 250

Chapter Text

Chapter 241

After the doors had been closed again behind Clarke’s retreating back, Lexa was powerless to fight against the tears burning within her eyes for even a single moment longer and she did not even bother to brush them away either. No one was there to watch her break after all and as long as she pulled herself back together in time, even she was allowed to break once in a while.

Lexa looked around the room and she felt her chest tighten again as almost every space of her quarters was once again tied tightly to memories associated with Marie. It had been nearly paralyzing to lose the girl once, thinking now that they were shortly before losing the girl again and this time irrevocably, was a thought just too painful to dwell on. Lexa had no idea how she should survive the grief of losing her daughter like that. While Marie had been with the Ice queen and they had assumed the girl to have died, she had had Clarke’s unwavering support, but now, she would be alone once again. She was almost certain that Anya would ask to be sent back into Trikru lands and away from the capitol. This time she would also let her leave, she would not like to watch her go, but she had no right to demand from the woman to remain by her side either.

She stood up from her chair as well, forcing her body back into movement, ignoring the tears still streaming down her cheeks. Her thoughts turned dark all of a sudden, convinced once again that she just did not deserve any form of happiness as the commander. She had loved Costia and lost her through Nia’s hand, she had loved, or rather still loved, Clarke, but she had ended things with the blonde healer as well, only to hear now, that she would lose the child she loved so deeply to a sickness, something which they were powerless to fight against. Lexa wished to scream at the injustice of it all. But she knew, that she somehow would need to continue to function and to execute her duties, like was expected of her, she could not break completely and Marie was still here after all.

Another tear rolled down her cheek at the realization that the girl’s death looming above them, ready to rip the child from them at any moment, would from now on tarnish every moment they still had with their daughter. She knew that a part of her mind would always be hyperaware of the fact that this very moment could be the last which they would share with the girl and there was absolutely nothing they could do. Lexa sighed deeply, turning towards the bathroom, intent to wash away the tears from her face. She should not have believed into the chance of this true happiness in the first place.

Lexa’s face hardened slightly after she had washed off the fresh tear tracks from her skin. She did not wish the girl to see her like this. The girl had obviously realized already that something was wrong with her and was already worried enough. Before they did not know for sure that there might not be a little chance of a treatment, about which she would demand Clarke to speak again in Anya’s presence as soon as possible, she did not wish to tell Marie of Clarke’s suspicion just now.

Marie had spoken once about having to watch her mother getting weaker and weaker, as the treatment had not worked for her any longer, and how she had broken into the medical bay, intent to steal more medication for her mother. She could imagine that the girl would be completely paralyzed with fear wen she heard that she could be suffering from the disease which had killed her mother in front of her eyes.

Lexa forced her thoughts to quiet down after another few moments, focusing her attention on fixing her appearance quickly. She still needed to visit the conclave, the nightblood children needed her as well and they would need her to remain strong no matter what.

~ ~ ~

When Marie woke the next time, she immediately looked through the room, grey eyes slightly panicked until she could spot Lexa and Anya sitting on the couch and a slight smile settled on her face, when she noticed Risha lying next to her on the bed. She reached out and let her fingers glide through wolf’s soft grey fur and a slight giggle passed through her lips as Risha suddenly leapt forward and licked over her face.

Lexa turned around on the couch and a soft expression appeared on her features, as she immediately stood up to move over to Marie. “How do you feel?” she addressed the girl kindly, while her gaze scanned the girl over quickly, looking for any signs of the child not feeling well.

Marie’s brows furrowed for a moment and her head tilted to the sight slightly, thinking for a moment about how she was feeling at all. “Good” she settled on with a little smile, pushing the furs from her body and nudging Risha from herself as well.

The wolf scrutinized her human for a moment, turning around a moment later and jumping from the bed in the direction of the fire place and rolling itself together there, ice blue eyes burning over to the bed almost accusative.

“How long have I slept?” Marie asked with a slight frown and in a hesitant tone.

Lexa remained silent for a moment, giving the girl a sympathetic smile “You were tired, Marie, it does not matter”.

Marie’s frown only deepened at the vague answer, she sensed easily that Lexa was hesitant to tell her something, which seemed uncharacteristic of her, but before she could prod the woman further, Anya appeared behind her.

“You have missed dinner” the general said, voice showing a slight amount of worry, as she gazed down at the girl.

Marie’s grey eyes widened slightly “I have slept the whole day” she exclaimed in exasperation and her mouth pulled into a pout.

“Do not worry over it” Anya put a damper to the girl’s obvious intent on arguing. They had considered waking the girl, but had decided against it in the end. Marie had slept without nightmares for hours, which was unusual for the child to begin with. It appeared as if the girl was simply requiring much more sleep now and they were worried that keeping her awake on purpose would only quicken her condition to worsen. “There is some dinner left for you” Anya put her hands on the girl’s thin shoulders, giving her a slight nudge into the direction of the table.

Marie’s pout lessened a little and she sat down at the table again, her grey eyes continued to focus back on Lexa, something seemed off about the woman, but she could not identify just what. She noticed only now that Ontari was actually not within the quarters any longer and she immediately wondered where the older girl could be. Would they move back into their original quarters? Could Clarke have been there because of that? Had she and Lexa reconciled with each other? For some reason that thought did not sit right with her. Would they move back to their original quarters because of Clarke?

She picked at her food without any real appetite. She did not want to leave the commander’s quarters. They had just returned to the capitol after all. She sensed that both women were sort of tenser than normal and both of them seemed to watch her every move, although they also seemed to try not to be so apparent about it.

“Are you feeling sick?” Lexa asked worriedly, after watching the girl only shoving some of the food around the plate without actually eating anything. She had agreed with Anya that they wanted to speak with Clarke again about the treatment option and that the blonde healer could take another look at Marie.

Anya reached out, feeling the girl’s temperature quickly, thankfully the girl’s skin felt normal to the touch.

Marie frowned at the overly worried antics of both of them. Besides being too tired, she felt fine and her appetite had been next to non-existing for some time now as well.  “I am fine” she answered, voice strong and a hint of annoyance flashed through her grey eyes, looking between the both of them for a moment.

“Then eat, little star” Lexa appeased the girl in a softer tone and she opened her mouth to say more, but was interrupted by a knock at her door. She sighed under her breath; she had asked not to be disturbed today after all. She lightly let a hand rest on the girl’s head for a moment and a slight smile ghosted around her lips when Marie’s head tilted upwards and their eyes met for a second, before she moved towards the doors to her quarters.

Marie’s eyes followed Lexa for a second, but they widened when her gaze fell back onto the table and she noticed the state of one of Anya’s hands, resting on the surface of the table. The knuckles were clearly busted and looked swollen and tender. “Where is Ontari?” she asked intently “Did something happen while I slept? Will we have to move back to our quarters?”

Anya’s eyes narrowed slightly at the girl, wondering where she had come up with the last question. She had certainly not hinted at the possibility of moving back into their own quarters now, neither would she and Anya was fairly certain that Lexa would prefer to let the girl stay now more than ever. Before she could have even reacted, Marie had reached out and she felt a white-hot pain burn through her hands as the skin healed in an instant and her hand once again did not even have a single scratch. She had barely even seen the girl’s fingers glow for more than a second, before the child’s talent had healed her slight injury already. A glance over her shoulder told her, that it was Clarke standing within the opened door to the commander’s quarters and she breathed out a sigh of internal relief, the girl was becoming too careless in using her talent. It seemed that their cautioning of the girl to cut down on her usage of it had been completely in vain.

Marie gave the general a sheepish and innocent look, when she noticed the dwindling annoyance in the woman’s brown eyes, before she glanced towards the door as well and noticed Clarke’s presence and a frown settled on her features, wondering once again if the healer would be moving back in with Lexa, the commander after all still loved her.

Lexa motioned Clarke inside and although her back had been turned towards Marie, she had still caught the questions which she had asked Anya “You are not going to move back into your own quarters, only if you wish to” she assured the child immediately and she was sure without the girl actually answering that Marie would not willingly change anything about their sleeping arrangement “And Ontari is with the rest of the conclave for now” she added. The older nightblood still had not truly found a connection to the rest of her novitiates and it actually had been Ontari’s suggestion to stay with them for now.

Marie seemed to be at least slightly put at ease again by Lexa’s words and her body relaxed visibly, looking up at Clarke curiously instead.

“I want to examine you again” she said and Marie immediately pulled a face.

“I am fine” Marie repeated defensively, crossing her arms over her chest. She still remembered Abby wanting to examine her, only to put her to sleep without even saying anything beforehand and waking up in pain afterwards.

“Marie” Lexa admonished the girl in a slightly sharper tone “We do want Clarke to take another look at you”.

Marie held the commander’s gaze for long silent moments, probably internally thinking if she could somehow sway the woman’s mind. Her shoulders dropped a little in defeat another moment later and she looked up again with her shoulders hunched slightly and a sad expression on her features.

When Marie made to stand up, Clarke stepped closer “You can remain sitting for now” she said “I want to look at your head first” she explained. She lightly grabbed onto the girl’s chin and forced it upwards, when Marie remained staring at her own knees instead.

Marie’s features clearly showed her resistance to being examined again at all, but she remained still now. She only tried to move her head away, when Clarke actually pressed down on the bump on her forehead with a little force.

Clarke tightened her fingers around the girl’s chin quickly, immobilizing the girl with a strong grasp, from moving away completely. It seemed that the bump was getting smaller slowly, but was obviously painful to the touch. She still could make out if the girl’s skull might have suffered another crack or not though.

“Alright” she said, easing away from Marie a little “You can stand up now”.

Marie rubbed at her chin a little, grey eyes looked accusatory towards Clarke.

Lexa offered a hand to the girl, leading her a little away from the table and she turned an inquiring gaze to Clarke, asking the woman mutely where she would need Marie to be.

Clarke inclined her head and straightened herself, a kind and open expression on her features “Anya said that you are having bruises on your back. Strip out of your clothes for me, so that I can take a look at that, please” she directed.

Marie’s grey eyes shortly flitted to Lexa, who gave her a reassuring nod and squeezed her hand shortly, before letting go, but she remained close to the child. She stepped closer again to Marie, when the girl had turned her head and her gaze landed on Marie’s chin. The skin there was definitely red now and if it was not her imagination, it was already beginning to bruise.

Her green eyes blazed angrily when she gently urged Marie to turn her head again and she now clearly could make out the shape of Clarke’s fingers imprinted on the child’s fair skin, bruising up in front of her eyes.

Anya frowned when she noticed Lexa’s frame tensing and how her breathing had visibly shuddered, only to be exhaled in an angry huff. She stepped closer towards Marie and Lexa, while Clarke remained a little in the background, visibly confused by Lexa’s sudden anger. She took in a startled breath, when she noticed what Lexa must have already, bruises from Clarke restricting Marie’s movements only moments ago were already beginning to show on the girl’s skin. Her eyebrows raised in alarm; this surely could not be normal any longer. If the girl had bruised this easily before, she would have constantly been black and blue during the beginning of their training.

Clarke almost hesitantly stepped closer, when Anya made a little more room.

Marie’s features showed her clear confusion as to why they were reacting like this and the girl threw unsettled gazes between them continuously.

Clarke’s brows furrowed when she followed Lexa’s clearly accusatory gaze; she had seen the woman’s jaw clenching and how her nostrils had flared just the slightest bit, both were clear signs of the brunette’s annoyance ticking up. She blinked a few times, when her eyes finally focused on Marie’s chin and she had to recognize that her fingers had visibly left marks on Marie’s skin. She frowned, she had not touched Marie that harshly after all, sure she had exerted some force to keep her in place, but nothing so extreme that it should warrant a bruise to form so quickly.

“You have left a bruise on her skin” Lexa seethed darkly, teeth visibly clenched and whole composure tense.

Marie’s own eyes widened and she reached up to her chin, as if to feel for the affected area.

Clarke shook her head quickly “You have seen that I have not touched her so strongly to provoke this purposefully” she justified herself. She tried not to feel hurt by Lexa’s obviously quick conclusion that she was to blame “Marie, can you please strip out of your shirt?” she repeated, trying to ignore the commander’s heavy gaze resting on herself.

Marie was very obviously influenced by Lexa’s mannerism and it took her long moments to finally comply with Clarke’s order.

Anya took the shirt from the girl’s hands and her brown eyes widened, when she noticed several more bruises on Marie’s body, than had been there on the previous night. A rather large bruise had formed on one of her shoulders and Anya could easily spot other bruises, some larger, some smaller marring the skin of the girl’s chest, stomach and arm. Her back had already been bruised on the night before, but where could all of these bruises have come from? The child had only left the commander’s quarters in Ontari’s company during the day and Anya did not doubt for a second that the nightblood would have told them if they had run into trouble, or if Marie had for some reason left her, if even only for a very short amount of time.

Lexa turned slightly at hearing Anya’s sharp intake of breath and the anger immediately drained from her mind, replaced by internal horror at seeing the actual state of Marie’s body.

Clarke stepped closer as well and she felt the dark realization settle in her mind that leukaemia appeared to be an even more likely diagnose for the girl. Bruising this quickly and severely was definitely not the healthy reaction of a body.

“What?” Marie exclaimed, clearly unnerved by the heavy stares of the three women and she crossed her arms over her chest self-consciously.

“Did her skin show this amount of bruising already last night?” Clarke asked in a calm tone, stepping around the child and inspecting her back as well. Some of the bruising on her back clearly accumulated around her spine.

Anya shook her head in the negative, expression crestfallen and brown eyes grave.

Lexa’s gaze was still focused on Marie’s exposed body, while her mind tried to come to terms with what she was seeing. She knew that the girl had not been training and she most definitely had not gotten this amount of bruising during the war either.

Before any of them could say or do anything else, Marie suddenly reached up to her nose, feeling something run form it and let out a startled whine when her fingers were tinted once again red with blood. Her grey eyes were wide as she stared at her shaking fingers and breathing suddenly became almost impossible, as her chest tightened and refused to draw even a single further breath.

Lexa knew what to expect now and quickly crossed the remaining distance to Marie, catching the child as soon as she began to waver on her feet. She easily brought the now unconscious girl into her arms and carried her over to the bed, placing her on the mattress gently, before she placed a fur above her, to keep her warm. She stayed beside the bed for a moment, watching the girl’s chest rise and fall with each breath, fearing somehow that her breathing would stop right now in front of her very eyes.

Clarke’s expression was serene, as she watched Lexa carry Marie to the bed. She was most certainly convinced now, that Marie was suffering from an acute leukaemia form, with the way how quickly the girl had developed her symptoms in only a few weeks, she knew that her prognosis would be extremely poor as well.

 

Chapter 242

When Ontari returned to the commander’s quarters it did not take a genius to figure out that something was different. The commander and the general were still sitting in front of the fireplace, Risha sat at the commander’s feet, head placed on one of her thighs and the commander seemed to almost absentmindedly let her fingers caress over the wolf’s fur.

Both women appeared oddly serene and to Ontari it seemed as if the atmosphere was heavy in the room. Ontari wondered if their mood had something to do with Marie, she would have assumed to find the younger girl cuddled together with the commander on one of the armchairs, which seemed to have been about the favourite position of the child. But she finally spotted the younger girl lying in the bed already, obviously deeply asleep.

She knew that the two Trikru women were worried about Marie’s increasing tiredness and the fact that she continued to have nosebleeds without prompting. She had also seen a bruise form in the span of mere minutes, just after holding the younger girl upright to keep her from falling on the way to the stables. Maybe the girl truly was sick and Wanheda was supposed to help her?

“Is something wrong with Marie?” she asked, voice slightly hesitant, unsure if the two women would even give her an answer.

Anya looked up at the sound of her older charge speaking, she had not truly noticed her arrival at all. They had not spoken about the possibility of Ontari sleeping with the other novitiates for the time being, so she should not have been surprised that Ontari had returned to the commander’s quarters.

She considered for a moment on how much to tell the nightblood girl. She knew how deeply the friendship between the two girls ran and Ontari would see Marie getting worse any way. Keeping the truth from her seemed unwise somehow. Anya shortly bandied a glance with Lexa and a mute understanding passed between them.

“Clarke thinks that Marie has the same disease which has killed Marie’s mother in the past” Anya explained, voice heavy and brown eyes visibly tearing up at the thought. She still could not accept that their daughter was in the process of dying, a large part of her mind simply refused to believe this, clinging to the fleeting hope that either Clarke’s and Abby’s assumption was flawed or that their treatments could save the child, although they had failed to save her mother.

Ontari blinked for a moment, as she tried to process the general’s words. It took her a longer moment to understand the severity of the younger girl’s constitution and her dark eyes widened. “Is she…” she began to question, but stopped for a second, as a lump lodged itself into her throat and she tried to swallow it down forcefully “Is she going to die?” she finally breathed out, aware of just how unsteady her tone was at the moment.

She knew the answer already, before either women gave her a verbal answer. Both of them had looked for a second as if she had physically struck them and she felt her own heart grow heavy with the thought of Marie dying any time soon. She wanted to ask after how long the younger girl was expected to make it, but she somehow was physically unable to force the words past her lips. She felt paralyzed and empty all of a sudden, each breath felt wrong somehow and she morbidly wondered just how many breaths Marie still had to breath, before her body would give out on her. She had of course noticed that something was not right with the younger girl’s constitution any longer, but she had never assumed that it would be something this severe. She had not never contemplated the possibility of the younger girl dying any time soon, at least not removed from a battlefield.

During the last few hours, which she had spent with the other novitiates, Ontari had been constantly reminded of the fact of how different her relationship to the other nightbloods and to Marie would remain. She had learned by now that it would in the long run be better for her, if she at least got along slightly with the novitiates, but she was utterly certain that she would never find anyone else who would befriend her like Marie had. The blonde girl was unique in her mind and she would surely keep that place within her heart, even beyond her death.

~ ~ ~

On the next morning Marie woke up with a content smile, lying between Lexa and Anya on the huge bed. While she was actually cuddled up to Lexa, she could feel one of Anya’s arms resting over her shoulder as well. Not much light was filtering inside of the room just yet, so it must still have been some time before dawn.

She could feel Lexa’s fingers lazily move along her back in a gentle caress and she let her eyes drift close again for a moment. A thought bugged at her mind, keeping her from falling back asleep completely “Mommy?” she whispered, grey eyes opening again and she felt the fingers on her back halt in their movement for a moment, indicating that the woman was listening. “Are you gonna show me the ocean soon?” she asked the actual thought which had been stuck in her mind in a slightly hopeful tone.

She felt Lexa take in a deep breath beneath herself and she could feel the woman’s upper body vibrate slightly as she gave her answer “We shall see”. Marie was not able to analyse Lexa’s tone right now, as sleep already began to tug at her consciousness again and she let her whole frame relax again.

When she opened them again, more time must have passed and she was suddenly alone in the bed. Marie sat up under the furs with a frown on her features. Both places next to her were cold, so the two women must have left the bed some time ago. When she looked around the room, her frown only deepened, as she could spot neither Lexa nor Anya.

She blinked her eyes a few times, focusing on the table and her brows furrowed, when she finally recognized that the person sitting on one of the chairs was in fact Gustus.

The burly man looked over at her only a moment later and his dark eyes were kind as he met Marie’s gaze.

“Where are Lexa and Anya?” Marie asked, not able to completely ban a little whine from her tone. She loved waking up slowly with either or preferably both of them, but she guessed that now that the day of resting had passed, both had been swamped by their receptive duties once again. She wondered why neither of them had bothered to wake her up though, they usually only allowed her to sleep through the time it took them to get ready for the day and maybe through breakfast as well. But she could not remember now, if this scenario now had already happened in the past.

Gustus expression turned sober at the child’s innocent question. It was obvious that the girl would have preferred Lexa’s and Anya’s company by far over his own and the pure love this reaction showed, warmed his heart a little, despite the circumstances “The Ice queen will be executed shortly” he explained in a slightly sharp tone. Lexa had in fact ordered him to keep watch of Marie for the time being, as they did not want Marie to be at the execution.

Marie felt her throat constrict at the man’s words and she needed a moment to try to calm down her frantically beating heart again. She had of course known already that the queen would be executed, so it was not truly a surprise.

~ ~ ~

Lexa had felt the girl drift off again in her arms only moment after she had felt her wake up. The girl’s clearly hopeful question kept on repeating itself within her mind and she felt her heart grow heavy at the realization that they may never have the chances now to actually travel through the clans with their daughter.

She involuntarily tightened her arms around the child’s smaller body, bringing her the slightly bit closer to herself. She remembered her own promises to the girl so clearly, which she had made during the time in medical bay in Arkadia, while they had thought that Marie might never wake up again.

Lexa felt her throat tighten painfully at the realization that they had already thought to have lost the child two times by now and were now already waiting for the third time to happen. In the medical bay they had later assumed that Marie’s talent might have saved the child from death and Lexa wondered for a fleeting moment if this could happen again. How often could the girl really be on the brink of death and walk out alive again?

Tearing herself out of the bed only shortly later was almost physically painful right now, as her mind was only all too aware of the fact that this very moment could very well already be the last chance, she had to hold the girl like this.

Lexa felt her eyes mist over with tears and she blinked her eyes forcefully, blinking the tears away, not allowing them to fall down. The child was still there and although they did not know for how long she would remain to do so, it would not help either of them to think in such a fashion. They should cherish each moment they were granted with the girl, yes, but always assuming it to be the very last, would only tarnish the little time they had left together.

She needed long moments to entangle herself from Marie without waking the girl up in the process. She had scheduled Nia’s execution for dawn of this day and she could barely wait for justice to finally be served.

Anya was woken by the sound of Lexa walking through the room on bare feet and she stretched slightly. The hint of a smile settled onto her features, when she took in Marie’s sleeping form next to her. The child’s features were totally relaxed at the moment and looked almost peaceful.

She reached out to brush a blonde lock from the girl’s forehead, keeping her touch featherlight and her smile deepened when the girl subconsciously followed her gentle touch, tilting her head in her direction and the smallest hint of a content smile settled on Marie’s young features.

“Let her sleep” Lexa suddenly said, keeping her tone low and coming to stand next to the bed, watching the small gentle exchange between Anya and their daughter play out. “She does not have to be at the execution” she added.

Anya frowned slightly “She should be, she is our second” she retorted.

Lexa shook her head and her tone was almost bitter as she said “That will not matter anymore in the future and I do not want her to have to see and partake in this execution. I do not want her to suffer anything again at all in the remain…” she broke off suddenly and her expression turned deeply sad as well.

Anya nodded with a deep sigh; she could certainly understand the young leader’s intention without her to end what she had begun to say. She felt another painful tug at her heart and she let her fingers caress along the side of Marie’s face once more. Her eyes narrowed down at the slight bruising now truly recognizable on the child’s chin and she finally rolled herself out of bed as well a moment later. “Who will…?” she began to ask, but was interrupted by Lexa.

“Gustus can stay with her” the commander immediately said. She would have preferred to stay with the child herself, but she knew that she would not be able to spend all time of the day with the girl and not wanting her to be at the execution overweighed her almost physical need to stay close to Marie by far. She had contemplated to let Ontari stay with their daughter, Marie would probably enjoy her company better, but she thought it important to have the Ice Nation nightblood present at the execution of her former puppet master.

Anya nodded in mute acknowledgement. She would have proposed to stay here instead, but the anger at the Ice queen still coursed hotly through her veins and she had no intention to pass up on the chance of inflicting at least some of the pain the woman had put Marie through back on her. She quickly went about dressing herself back into her armour, watching from the corners of her eyes how Lexa did the same. She strode over to the couch and quickly gave Ontari’s shoulder a little shake, her older charge had gotten so used with this sleeping arrangement that she rarely woke anymore at low sounds.

Ontari was instantly awake at the touch and her gaze immediately went to the bed, checking on the fact that Marie was still there. Anya and Lexa had not told her any specifics about how severe the younger girl’s disease was, but it was almost painfully clear in almost every word about the child that they seemed to regard it a valid possibility that the girl could even be dying in the next few days, it had not sounded at all as if they thought it likely for Marie to make it through another winter. She had thought that Skykru medicines were supposed to be that much more advanced, so why did they not have the means to cure the younger girl? Did they simply not wish to help the girl because she had denounced her origin? But she was fairly certain that the commander would move heaven and hell for the child if that was the case, even going to war against the small clan if necessary.

She got ready quickly as well, trying to make as few sounds as possible. It astounded her slightly that Marie did not even stir once on the bed, sleeping through them getting ready, Alira coming into the commander’s quarters and doing her hair and delivering a light breakfast. Ontari had hovered next to the table for a few moments indecisively.

The general had sat down on the edge of the bed again, balancing a plate with breakfast on her lap. The woman was not physically touching Marie, but her brown eyes travelled back to the girl every other moment.

Ontari considered again to ask about how long they were expecting Marie to make it from now on, but she decided against it, when Alira left the commander’s quarters and Gustus entered instead.

She was a little taken off guard, when the general had finished her quick breakfast and motioned her over to apply some warpaint to her features. Anya had painted typical Trikru warpaint onto the skin of her face and Ontari felt it settle almost coldly against her skin. She had rarely worn warpaint so far and if any, then the typical white warpaint of Azgeda. Her dark eyes shown with a hint of gratitude at the general and for some reason the small gesture of applying this warpaint and by thus symbolizing her connection to the general, made a weird warm feeling settle in the pit of her stomach. This gesture did not have anything to do with her friendship to Marie, it felt more as if she truly had earned the Trikru general’s acceptance on her own now and it meant much more to Ontari than she either had expected nor would she ever admit to out loud.

Her feelings were in turmoil when they left the commander’s quarters together, it had been almost weird to watch both women step to the bed shortly, pressing a light kiss to Marie’s forehead as if in mute farewell, and now to know that they were going to Nia’s execution.

Ontari had expected to feel relieved to see the woman finally being brought to an end. But her mind kept on flashing back to her own past in the queen’s hands. She had once blindly believed the woman’s vile words, simply not knowing any better. She knew better now and the realization of just how mistreated she had been at her hands still sat heavily on her mind. Seeing what Nia had done to Marie truly had driven home of just how cruel and merciless the woman truly was. She could barely believe now that she had once thrived to become a replica of her.

~ ~ ~

The streets of Polis were already filled to the brim with people. It did not come to any real surprise that there were barely any Ice Nation warriors among the crowd though. Lexa easily spotted that all other clans were widely distributed though and she noticed a small delegation of Azgeda standing directly in front of the podium at the basement of the tower. A few warriors surrounded the prince of Azgeda and the uneasiness seemed to be almost rolling off of them in waves.

Lexa could understand how torn the man would be about this execution, Nia was still his mother after all and no matter how vile she was, she would forever remain his family. She purposefully walked up to the group and greeted the prince obviously enough for everyone to see, she needed to make it absolutely clear from the start that Ice Nation would remain in her favour under their new rule, beginning this very day. She did not expect tensions between Ice Nation and the other clans to cool down immediately, but the others would always call out for their blood if she did not put a damper to it at once, broadcasting her trust in their prince like that. She was fairly certain that Ontari would be battling with mixed emotions as well, no matter how much Nia had turned her blind devotion into hate, a shadow of her desperate wish to please the woman would remain ingrained in her mind.

The commander stepped forward, head held high and green eyes blazing in their intensity, accentuated by the dark warpaint smeared around them, giving her face an even harder complexion “People of the kongeda…” she opened her speech, voice easily carrying over the crowd and all eyes were immediately hefted onto her as everyone fell silent, even the children scattered around the crowd seemed to hold their very breaths “…we have gathered here today to bring the justified end of queen Nia’s rule. We will implement justice for her many transgressions against our laws. Nia has tried to destroy our unity and now she will be the one to fall.”

 

 

Chapter 243

An agreeing murmur travelled through the crowd and Lexa’s blazed even stronger minutely. It was obvious that her people agreed with her verdict over the queen and were looking forward to seeing the woman executed as much as she did. She would need to keep the mood between the clans exactly like that for her vision of the coalition ever becoming a true unit to come into fruition.

Lexa knew very well that Nia would have destroyed everything for which she had worked her whole life in her thrive for power, if the war had played out differently. The queen would undoubtedly have subjugated all other clans under her rule, elated Ice Nation above all others and she would have cared nothing for the suffering of the normal civilization.

Lexa gave the guards at the basement of the tower a nod, signalling for them to bring forth the queen.

During the short time it took them to escort Nia out of the tower, Lexa let her gaze travel up into the sky. She imagined that Costia would be watching this very moment and for the blink of an eye it seemed as if she could see her in front of her again. How her wild curls had always flown around her face, which almost always had been illuminated by a bright smile. She once again could see those loved twinkling eyes in the forefront of her mind and for the first time since she had lost her, the lively image was not replaced by the way she had found her head in her bed. 

Melancholia washed through her mind momentarily, but it was dampened severely when the atmosphere in the crowd switched.

The queen was being led out of the tower at this very moment. Even now, bound by heavy chains, visibly dirty and gagged, the queen somehow still exuded power and her eyes had not lost any of their burning intensity yet.

Lexa straightened herself to full height and her melancholia was diminished completely when her eyes minutely connected with Nia’s and she noticed the madness flashing through them again. Her mind immediately threw her back to the words the queen had hurled against both she and Anya in the tent a few days ago. All too soon the memory was replaced by flashes of how Marie had been directly after her return to the capitol, up to the many breakdown the child had suffered since then, most if not all of them prompted somehow by the trauma Nia had put their daughter through.

She felt the hatred coursing through her mind nearly consume all of her sensible thought, now more than ever. Nia had robbed both of them of precious months with their daughter. She had been convinced that they would have time, much more time with Marie than it now seemed likely to come true. If anything, it should have been herself in Marie’s place. Lexa would gladly take this burden from her daughter, if she somehow could and she was sure Anya would readily offer the same.

Her green eyes were hard and cold as the queen was tied to the wooden post and she met her stare seemingly unfazed. The queen had been tied down in a way that her back faced the crowd for now. Lexa had previously decided that simply giving her death of a thousand cuts was not enough. Nyko stood next to the wooden post and when he received his nod, with the help of one of the guards, he forced the queen to drink whatever the vial in his hands contained.

Ontari watched the proceeding with a slight frown, she did not understand fully why she was so torn about watching this now. She had looked forward to the war and she had of course known that it would end in the queen’s death if the coalition subdued Azgeda. She leaned slightly closer to Anya “What was that?” she asked under her breath, unable to stifle her curiosity for now. She knew well enough that the queen had often forced prisoners to drink halogenic concoctions, which made them easier to break and manipulate. 

Anya did not look over at Ontari while she answered “Mixture of a strong coagulant, something to keep her awake and something which will make her last” her tone was harsh and her eyes remained hefted onto the queen. She knew how rarely Lexa agreed to the usage of substances like that during an execution, but there was not a sliver of doubt in her mind that the queen deserved every single ounce of suffering which she was going to experience now and she almost darkly wished that the woman would last for hours before she would be beheaded. She still remembered how Marie had spoken to Ontari about wishing to kill herself during the time with the queen and how Nia had outright told her that she would not deserve the mercy of death. If possible, Anya would like the possibility to torture the woman alone, keeping her alive for days, weeks even, until there would be nothing left of the proud and maniacal queen, replaced by someone begging for death instead.

The crowd watched in agitated tension as the queen was tied down and last her top was cut away, hanging from her shoulders in tatters. Her eyes were fixed on Ontari right now and her expression almost looked as if she truly expected the nightblood girl to come to her rescue.

For the flash of a second Lexa envisioned Ontari suddenly attacking her, if caught by surprise, the younger nightblood could very well overpower her and there was no doubt in her mind that the girl knew well enough on where to stab someone to kill with a single strike. She kept her eyes focused on Nia nevertheless, she did not doubt any longer that Ontari would betray her.

Lexa let her gaze wander over the crowd for a moment, waiting for the concoction which Nyko had forced down Nia’s throat to take effect. It would keep her from bleeding out too quickly, denying her the refuge of unconsciousness, she would be awake and alter the whole time.

She proclaimed loudly that the queen’s punishment would begin with a lashing. One chosen representative of each clan of the coalition would be handed the whip, allowed to inflict thirteen lashes on the queen, signifying the total number of the clans still united under the banner of the coalition, despite the queen’s attempts to destroy it.

Roan had agreed that Ontari would be the one to get her go at the lashing on Azgeda’s behalf and Lexa had decided that the nightblood girl would also be the first one as well. It would symbolize Ontari’s switched loyalty even more.

Ontari visibly straightened her shoulders when Lexa gave her a nod, motioning her to stand forward.

Anya gave the girl a reassuring look but she still noticed the subtle shake of her charge’s hands as she accepted the whip from a guard.

Ontari closed her eyes for a moment, as she closed her fingers tighter around the handle of the whip. She already had experience with giving a whipping, the queen had often ordered her to partake in the torture of one prisoner or the other and she had never questioned doing so at all. She had shuddered for a moment, as she had walked past Nia, the woman’s eyes had connected with hers and she was struck, feeling herself mentally shrink down to the frightened child being brought in front of the queen all of those years ago. She would forever remember the first days of being with the queen.

Ontari shook her head slightly, clearing her mind of her dark memories, when she noticed that another murmur travelled through the crowd and she guessed that she must have hesitated for a moment too long. She minutely looked at the commander and general, both seemed a tad bit worried at her hesitation. But she was not surprised the slightest bit to see the disparaging expression on the flamekeeper’s face, standing with the other novitiates also on the wooden podium.

After another deep breath, Ontari took the whip up above her head, letting it hit hard across the queen’s back. For the flash of a second Ontari felt a surge of disbelieve and guilt at what she was actually doing and the voice of the queen barked loudly through her mind.

She knew that Nia had not made a single sound at the impact though and her voice was only resonation through her mind and not real at all. She had not hit hard enough to break the woman’s skin but Ontari could see the welt rise red against her fair skin.

Ontari suddenly remembered the marks on Marie’s skin during their time in the queen’s fortress, when she raised the whip again, bringing it down with even more force now. She felt a dark kind of satisfaction course through her mind at the audible gasp being torn from the queen’s mouth. Nia had seemed to love to test her physical and mental limits during their “lessons” and finally push her beyond that, she knew now that she had never even stood a chance at truly appeasing the queen.

By the end of the thirteen lashes she was allowed to bring down on the queen, she had in fact already broken her skin and Ontari’s hands shook when she handed over the whip to Anya, who would represent Trikru now. Her hands did not shake anymore from tension, but rather from a dark euphoria flowing through her veins and Ontari knew now without a sliver of any doubt that she would singlehandedly kill the queen now, if she got the chance.

She held Anya’s gaze for a moment in passing, giving her the subtlest hint of a smile when she felt the general’s hand squeezing hers for a second. She had never assumed to find a different place in life, but she knew that she now had a future to look forward to once again.

Anya did not hesitate for a second to begin her part of the whipping and she seemed to bring down the whip with as much force as she could physically muster, breaking the queen’s skin with each and every strike. Her blows had such force that splatters of blood ended up on her own face, but the general either did not care or did not notice at all.

Lexa watched Anya dealing out her lashes, torn between worrying that the older woman would give into the dark side of her mind, clearly wishing to kill the queen right now on her own and feeling her own thirst for revenge simmer hotly in her veins and the small sounds of distress which slowly were pulled from Nia’s lips only seemed to increase her dark longing to see and hear her suffer. A small part of her mind also wondered almost absentmindedly how Marie was doing currently, if she was still sleeping or if she had woken by now and how she would react to being alone in Gustus’ company.

The whipping continued for a rather long time and by the end of it, the queen’s back was not in better condition any longer than the rags left of her top. Nia had begun to at least whimper with each new strike. Due to the coagulant in Nyko’s concoction Nia had not lost much blood yet and her eyes were widened slightly.

Lexa was the last one to receive the whip and the single plaits of it were already coated in a bit of blood, mixed with what appeared to be whole chunks of skin which had been torn from Nia’s back. Her fingers closed around the handle and Lexa just let her part of her anger take over her mind as she brought the whip down on Nia’s already tattered back. She knew just how many scars disfigured Marie’s tattoo now and although she did not know for sure if Nia had whipped the child singlehandedly, it had at least happened upon her orders.

Her breathing was elated from the exertion, when Lexa let the whip fall to the wooden podium unceremoniously. She did not know if she was imagining the shimmer of white beneath the torn flesh of Nia’s back or if the whip had truly burrowed itself deep enough to expose a part of the woman’s spine, neither did she truly care. It annoyed her the slightest bit, that Nia had not yet begun to truly scream, but she was sure that it would not take long now for her to begin to do so.

She nodded to the guards again and the queen was cut from her bindings for now, only to be pushed around with harsh hands. It was obvious that her legs would have given out on her if the guards had not kept her standing forcefully.

Lexa’s green eyes gleamed darkly, as she accepted a curved dagger from another guard. The young man would remain standing next to the queen and the blade would be dipped into a container with a special powder in his hands each time before a new wound would be inflicted. The powder once again contained a strong coagulant, but also a poison acting on the nervous system. Each cut would burn horribly, as if done by boiling acid.

Internally Lexa felt a morbid satisfaction at noticing the queen’s eyes widen just the slightest bit, fear flashing through them for a second, before she could mask it again. The poison actually stemmed from the lands of Ice Nation, so Nia knew its properties very well and that she would by dying in slow agony. It was rarely used in Polis in execution nowadays, Lexa had slowly lessened the amount of suffering for the one being executed, but she felt that Nia more than deserved just the slightest bit of extra suffering.

Her eyes burned into Nia’s as she stepped closer to the Ice queen. The woman had been bound to the posts in a way which forced her arms over her head and allowed her next to no movement. She lightly placed the tip of the dagger on of Nia’s exposed wrists just below the bindings immobilizing her. She let the blade run along the woman’s arm to her chest and her lips curved into the shadow of a sardonic smirk when Nia pulled at the bindings as much as she could. When she reached the woman’s upper body, only covered by what remained of her chest binding, Lexa finally pressed the dagger into Nia’s flash, outlining exactly the patch of skin which Marie had removed from her own body in her desperate attempt to get rid of Nia’s kill marks.

Lexa was not sure if she had imagined the flash of recognition passing through Nia’s eyes or not but it had appeared to her as if the queen had recognized how deliberate her placement of her cuts was. Because of her station as the commander no one dared to say a word while Lexa removed the same patch of skin from Nia’s body slowly. She knew that the burn of the poison would take a moment to set in and Lexa remained rooted to the spot, green eyes burning into Nia’s, until the older woman gasped out a pained breath and her eyes definitely had widened now. Lexa felt a dark satisfaction consume her mind when the queen bit down on her lips forcefully, obviously determined to refrain herself from screaming out loud just a moment longer.

She handed over the dagger to Ontari, who would be the first nightblood to place her cuts and there was definitely no hesitation left in the girl’s dark eyes now.

Ontari met the queen’s gaze for a moment and she only raised her chin defiantly when the queen breathed out a pained “how could you after all that I have done for you…”. The woman’s words had been strained, but Ontari could not muster even a single ounce of sympathy for her. The queen never had shown any sympathy for herself, neither had she shown Marie any. She more than deserved her fate. She only recognized now just where the commander had placed her own cuts before her and her dark eyes flashed with anger once again.

She placed her own cut on Nia’s hip, cutting through her trousers to be sure that she pierced the skin. She knew that this area hurt pretty much, as there was not much fat under the skin there.

Aden had already stepped up behind her, when Ontari turned away from the queen, feeling the slightest bit of disappointment that the woman still had not screamed out loud. She still remembered how she had always been prompted to make their prisoners scream as soon as possible; someone who was not screaming yet, was not broken yet, neither too close to breaking.

She handed over the dagger with a grim expression and she was fairly certain that Aden was thinking of Marie as well. The blonde boy might even be thinking slightly of the commander’s first love, she had heard that Aden had gotten to know her slightly.

Ontari returned to Anya’s side, answering the general’s acknowledging nod with one of her own, before her eyes returned to Nia again. She could not remember any longer just how often the queen had ordered of her to punish a prisoner, often times the queen had not even remained behind to watch and if she had, she had stood in a corner, motionless and not lifting a single finger. Nia’s work had only ever begun after the prisoners will had already been broken.

Her thoughts were pulled back into the presence, when the first scream pierced the air. Nia was breathing heavily and she was trying to tear at the binding again.

Ontari could see easily that all of her efforts only resulted in the wounds on her back opening further. Judging from the pure number of people waiting to take their turn, she knew that it would be a long execution.

It confused her slightly that Nyko was still standing on the podium, tinkering with some other vials. She knew what powder the dagger was dipped in each time after it had been used, she had seen its effects already a long time ago. She could not think of anything else which could be added to increase the woman’s pain though.

Anya was the first one to not actually only place a more or less shallow cut, but stabbed the dagger right through one of Nia’s palms. She had briefly contemplated stabbing her between the legs, but even the coagulant would not have been strong enough to keep her from bleeding out too quickly then.

Monty was visibly a little green in the face as he took his rightful place as the Skykru’s ambassador to cut into the queen. Lexa had intoned into him how important it was for the newest clan within the coalition to show publicly that they were willing to adapt to their culture. He was the last of the ambassadors to place his cut and the dagger was handed over to prince Roan by him.

Lexa watched Roan step closer to his mother carefully. His features were controlled and betrayed nothing, but his eyes belied his outward calmness, they were stormy with emotions, too many to pick out one specifically.

“You are no son of mine…” Nia grunted out with obvious difficulties.

If she had aimed to make her son falter, she had failed horribly at it. Roan’s eyes flashed angrily at his mother’s words and all the hints of hesitation left his eyes immediately and he directly cut through the markings on her face, the same ones he wore on his own skin.

The placement of the cuts seemed to continue forever and Ontari realized later that whatever Nyko had mixed together was supposed to keep the queen conscious for longer. The coagulant administered before, was obviously doing a great job. Although the queen’s skin was tattered visibly and she highly doubted that there was even a single patch untouched now, she was only covered in a light sheen of blood, instead of having bled out already. The queen had given up all pretence of strength and pride and had screamed at the top of her lungs for some time, now her voice was only a coarse whisper grunted out with each new cut.

The sun was indicating clearly that they had reached midday by now and Ontari was astounded to see that Nia truly had last through the placement of all cuts.

Lexa had nodded to the guards once again and the queen was cut free again. The woman tumbled to her knees immediately, but nothing more than another grunt passed through her lips. The fight had long left her burning eyes and they now only seemed tired and defeated as she was pulled upwards again and being held upwards.

Lexa unsheathed her sword slowly, nearing the queen with her heart beating quickly within her chest. She had waited so incredibly long to see the woman like this. She nodded to the guards once again and by the time Nia’s body was tilting forward again, she had already brought down the sword, cleanly beheading her with one strike. She watched the woman’s head roll over the wooden podium for a moment, before she teared her gaze away again.

It was done. Justice had finally been served.

 

 

Chapter 244

Gustus watched the girl carefully, she was still sitting under the furs and her expression clearly showed her displeasure at the whole situation. He did really hope that the girl was not on the verge of another breakdown, he was certain that he would not be able to calm her down if that was the case.

“Are you hungry?” he asked in a kind tone, standing from the table and walking to the bed with a friendly expression.

Marie shrugged, a little pout on her features. She wanted to be with Lexa and Anya now, nothing else.

Gustus bit back a sigh, he had feared already that the girl would not really be pleased to be in his company. The commander had told him beforehand that Marie seemed to have more problems from her headwound than expected, so that the girl was supposed to rest.

“Do you want to try to sleep some more?” Gustus proposed, coming to stand beside the bed, giving the girl a hopefully encouraging look.

Marie shrugged again, before she actually thought about the question and shook her head. She was fairly certain that her imagination would try to spin images of the queen being executed this very moment. Her breathing shuddered for a moment and she blinked as her eyes widened. She did not know if her imagination was playing a trick with her mind or not, but she thought to have heard a shrill scream from somewhere and the hairs on her arms immediately raised.

“Di…did…did you hear that?” Marie asked in a quivering tone, grey eyes wide and frightened as she looked up at Gustus.

The burly guard gazed down at the girl calmly and shook his head in the negative as a slight frown settled onto his features.  “You are safe here” he reassured the girl in a soothing tone “Come to the table and eat something” he repeated his suggestion, hoping that the girl’s attention would remain within the commander’s quarters that way.

Marie’s features pulled into a slight grimace, but when the man reached out a hand to her, she grasped it and let herself be helped from the bed, feeling the warmth of his calloused palm encase her smaller fingers. She absentmindedly assessed just how small her own hand was in comparison to Gustus’.

“When are they gonna return?” she asked, sitting down on a chair at the table, looking at Gustus expectantly.

Gustus sighed under his breath “They will return after the execution, Marie, you know that it takes as long as it takes”.

Marie frowned for a moment before a smile tugged at her lips, being reminded of Lexa using the words in another context. Her smile fell again when she realized that it might very well take several more hours. Without any real appetite and a rather bleak mood, Marie picked at her food, more playing around with it than actually eating anything.

Gustus watched the girl intently “Are you feeling sick?” he asked, wondering why the girl seemed to only play with her food.

Marie shook her head mutely, but only continued to shove her food from one side of the plate over to the other. She stopped with it when she noticed Gustus staring at her with a disparaging expression on his face. She sighed under her breath; her thoughts kept on returning to the queen. “Have you been to the ocean?” she asked with honest curiosity in her grey eyes, hoping that the man would just tell her some kind of story to divert her attention.

Gustus recognize the girl’s question for it really was and he smiled slightly as he remembered his visit to the ocean, years ago he had travelled to the lands of the Boat People, taking his own daughter with him. “Yes, I have been” he answered “together with Sierra. She loved the ocean” he added, dark eyes shimmering with the warmth of the memory.

Marie’s expression had turned even more interested now “Can you tell me about it, please?” she asked with innocent eyes, tone hopeful and waiting for the man to answer.

Gustus gave the girl a soft look, nodding readily “Sierra had just seen six summers and…”.

~ ~ ~

Lexa felt a strange kind of calmness settle within her mind when she stepped from the wooden podium and back towards the basement of the tower.

Clarke waited for her in front of the elevator; a serious expression was on her face and she proclaimed calmly “I have spoken to my mother again. You wanted to know about treatment options…”.

Lexa inclined her head, silencing the blonde woman quickly. She did not wish for word to spread about Marie’s condition “We shall speak in private” she motioned the blonde healer ahead into the elevator and followed her inside.

Anya felt the anticipation about what Clarke was planning to tell them thrum hotly in her veins. Thus far she had clung to the desperate hope that there would be a treatment for Marie, saving the child’s life once again. She knew that this conversation would likely determine their daughter’s fate from now on.

Ontari followed them into the elevator uncertainly, she did not know if she should go to the commander’s quarters now or where else to go. Marie would surely be awaiting the commander and the general and not herself and she had experienced already how difficult it was to appease the younger girl in this situation and was not truly looking forward to a repetition of it.

Anya noticed the uncertainty in her older charge’s composure. With the way of how closely together they were now living with each other, the girl could very well already hear what was going on.

“Should I return to the commander’s quarters?” Ontari finally asked into the silence a moment later.

Anya shook her head “You can hear this as well” she decided in a firm tone.

Lexa’s brows furrowed at the general’s words, but she did not disagree with her decision either. She notified the guards moving the elevator to let them leave on the floor of the throne room, she had no intention of letting Marie hear this conversation. Her heart weighed heavily, as she preceded them ahead towards the throne room.

It seemed almost absurd, Anya and she dressed in full battle gear, the queen’s blood splattered over it in places and now they would speak about the fate of their daughter.

Clarke had not watched the execution, too many warriors still needed the attention of a healer and the healers had their hands full and could need every help available. She had been slightly taken off guard by the physical appearance of Lexa and Anya and the grimness still clinging to their features.

Almost out of routine, Lexa marched through the throne room and sat down on her throne, looking at Clarke in expectation.

Clarke cleared her throat audibly before she began “My mother agrees that Marie’s symptoms match to what the leukaemia form of Marie’s mother. She had acute lymphocytic leukaemia…” she hesitated for a moment, when all she got as a reaction were blank stares and even open confusion from Ontari.

Clarke thought for a moment about how best to describe this form of disease to someone without any clear biological education “A leukaemia generally describes an abnormality in the development of the cells which makes up our blood. Generally speaking, our blood consists of red and white blood cells. The red blood cells are needed for the metabolism of oxygen and white blood cells make up our immune system” she tried to explain.

Lexa nodded along, although she did not understand each word. She motioned Clarke to continue, she doubted that they would be needed to understand the specifics of Marie’s disease. It would be enough to be informed about the treatment options, she could only trust Skykru’s superior knowledge here.

“Acute lymphocytic leukaemia is a very aggressive form of leukaemia, which means that it progressed extremely rapid. Easily formulated, Marie’s immune system is ceasing to function. Her white blood cells will not develop normally any longer, so the abnormal cells spread through her body, impairing normal function and causing her symptoms” Clarke continued in a heavy tone. She wished that she could tell them better news, but she knew that she could not lie to them either.

Anya felt her head already spinning slightly at the overload with this strange kind of information. She was not sure what the blonde healer actually meant by “immune system”, so she still did not understand what the actual problem was with Marie’s body. She interrupted the healer after another moment, asking what this now meant.

Clarke frowned, not deciding what the general actually wanted to know at all, she had been sure to have explained this clearly enough.

Anya felt impatience tug at her mind “I do not know what an immune system is supposed to be” she retorted in a sharp tone.

Clarke sighed again, nodding her head, trying to keep her expression free from any judgment, it was hard for her to determine just what she needed to explain to make them understand. “Our immune system clears the body constantly of infections” she answered the general’s question.

“She has not been sick this often” Anya retorted with a raised brow.

Clarke shook her head “No, I have not meant that it is only active in times of actual sickness. The only times that a human truly has a sickness is when the immune system has not been able to clear it.”

Anya frowned, still not truly understanding what Clarke wanted them to understand.

Lexa massaged her temples and she thought that Ontari looked as bewildered and impatient as she felt internally. “There is no need for us to understand this exactly” she interrupted her general and Clarke, before they could end up in a longer argument “I want to know how this disease can be treated” she looked back to Clarke inquiringly.

Clarke sighed visibly and she seemed to deflate a tad bit “I fear there is not much that can be done. We can do a chemotherapy. We could even screen for a fitting stem cell donor, but it’s highly unlikely that anyone will be a match”.

“I had been able to take her blood, so…” Anya reasoned with a frown, remembering that Marie had donated blood for her months ago and had probably saved her life in the process.

Clarke shook her head again “Blood and stem cells are not the same. You can certainly be tested, but it is more than unlikely that you will match”.

Anya’s even remotely hopeful expression had fallen at the healer’s words, breathing out a huff of frustration.

“Chemotherapy?” Lexa echoed questioningly “What does that do?” She had never heard the term and had absolutely no idea what it could be referring to.

“It is a therapy which would destroy certain cells in the body of the patient on purpose. In Marie’s case the treatment should destroy her white blood cells” Clarke explained with the hint of a grimace on her features.

Her mother had explained to her in depth what a chemotherapy meant and it would certainly not be easy to endure. Another even bigger problem was the extremely poor prognose for the girl. Abby had explained to her in clear terms that the chemotherapy had not showed much of an effect on Marie’s mother at all. It was likely that such a treatment would either not show any effect or only prolong Marie’s life for a few weeks, maybe a month or two, at most, but she could not give them any hope of the treatment being effective enough to cure the child.

“What would that mean for Marie?” Lexa continued to question; green eyes boring into Clarke’s intently.

Clarke swallowed once, before she answered cautiously “You mean the side effects?” and she waited for a moment for Lexa to nod in agreement. She sighed again “Chemotherapy is very aggressive. There are many side effects and I have to warn you that they are severe. It would not be easy and there is absolutely no guarantee that Marie would even have any benefits from it”.

Anya’s eyebrows furrowed in confusion “I thought that this treatment was supposed to heal Marie”.

Clarke shook her head again and sadness visibly lingered in her blue eyes as she met the general’s heavy gaze “Chemotherapy is by no means a cure. The only thing which might truly work as a cure is a stem cell transplantation. But like I already said it is almost impossible to find a match for her. The chemotherapy could potentially prolong her life”.

“Prolong it for how long?” Lexa interrupted in a sharp tone as her mind immediately clung to the hope that this treatment could gift them more time with their daughter.

Clarke’s features turned into an indecisive grimace “I fear that this is impossible to predict, Lexa. It solely depends on just how far the disease is already progressed, on Marie’s constitution and how well her body responds to the treatment” she said honestly and her expression turned sad again before she added “My mother said that Marie’s mother did not have any effects of the treatment unfortunately”.

Lexa and Anya bandied a silent gaze as both of them felt their heart drop into their stomachs. Lexa requested of Clarke to tell them more about the side effects the treatment would cause for Marie.

Clarke inclined her head before she began to list off what her mother had explained to her “The chemotherapy would purposefully destroy what little functional immune system Marie has now. So, she would in other words lose all protection against any infections for some time. Basically, catching a common cold could be deadly for her then. Immediate effects of this kind of treatment are mostly vomiting, feeling sick, weak and dizzy in general. Often the patients lose all of their hair during the treatment…”

Lexa’s brows furrowed while she listened to Clarke’s list of symptoms. She could already imagine how Marie would react to losing all of her hair. The child’s reaction had been bad enough to her hair being cut short by Nia, losing all her hair would be nothing Marie wished for.

“…being overly tired and exhausted. Anaemia, which would consequently lead to light-headedness, paleness, further fatigue, strong headaches and her breathing and heartbeat can be impaired” Clarke finished gravely.

Ontari looked horrified by what the woman had just enumerated “That is supposed to be a treatment?” she exclaimed in a slightly high-pitched tone “That sounds more as if you are planning to poison Marie slowly”.

Clarke shook her head again “I already said that it is a very aggressive treatment”.

Lexa had a contemplative expression on her features, thinking through all which she had heard now carefully.

“So, this treatment would all in all cause Marie even further suffering” Anya said in a critical tone “without the actual guarantee that it will benefit her at all?”.

Clarke’s expression looked absolutely crestfallen as she nodded her head and her voice was laced with deep compassion as she said “I wish that there was anything better which I could offer to you. I can only tell you the facts. You will have to decide if you want for Marie to receive the treatment in the hopes that it might prolong her life”.

“Is there any chance of this treatment to cure her completely?” Lexa asked after a moment of heavy silence.

Clarke looked indecisive as she answered “Saying that there is no chance would probably not be correct. But it is extremely unlikely, Lexa. I wish so much that there would be something Skykru could offer to save Marie, but I fear there is truly nothing this time…” her voice trailed off gravely and she blinked a few times.

Lexa nodded again, burrowing her face into her hands for long moments, trying to block out the other presences in the throne room. She wished now more than ever that she somehow possessed the power to exchange places with Marie, she would gladly die if it meant that the child could live. Marie’s question from the morning resonated through her mind again.

“Is Marie able to travel now?” she asked, not yet looking up again.

Anya furrowed her brows and before Clarke could say anything, she spoke up hotly “I do not want Marie to suffer even a day unnecessarily…”.

Lexa looked up again and her expression was exhausted and her green eyes seemed to have dimmed several shades “Marie asked again to see the ocean…” she repeated to Anya in a forlorn tone.

Anya frowned in reaction, feeling her irritation melt from her mind again, while she wondered when the girl could have voiced that question.

Clarke nodded with a cautious expression “I do not know exactly how quickly her condition will worsen Lexa” she assessed honestly “It can decrease abruptly if she catches any kind of infection”.

“Is there something you can do to make her feel better for some time?” Lexa asked, internally hoping that they would at least be able to fulfil the promise of showing the ocean to their daughter.

Clarke nodded again “There are several things she could be given, which would help to increase her health for some time. But it would only mask the effects of the disease” she cautioned.

“Is there anything else?” Lexa asked in a strained tone, feeling empty and exhausted all of a sudden.

Clarke shook her head in the negative “I can speak to Marie about her options, if you wi…” she began to offer.

Anya interrupted the blonde healer sharply “We will speak with her” she proclaimed in a resolute tone. They could consider having Clarke there in case Marie would have questions which they could not answer, but she felt that she and Lexa should be the ones to speak with Marie about her disease and surely not Clarke. Their daughter was still visibly uneasy around the blonde healer after all.

Clarke nodded, trying not to take any offence from Anya’s brisk mannerism “I will be there when you need me” she offered again, tone almost hesitant as she did so.

Lexa nodded and a flash of gratitude passed over her features “I assume that this chemotherapy would have to be done in Arkadia?”.

Clarke nodded again. In case of a chemotherapy they would need the definitely superior medical equipment of Arkadia and her mother’s expertise as well. When silence settled over the throne room again and the other three seemed to be lost within their own thoughts, Clarke slowly backed out of the room with a sad expression and a heavy heart. She truly wished that there was more that they could offer to save Marie.

Ontari watched Wanheda leave the room with a frown. Her mind seemed to have sort of shut down and all she truly felt was numbness. She had realized of course that the younger girl was sick, but definitely not to this extent. The commander and the general did not appear as shocked as she felt and she guessed that Wanheda had previously already told them about this outcome being a possibility. The two Trikru women both appeared crestfallen, preparing themselves mentally for the fact that they had to accept to already lose their daughter again.

Anya sighed heavily after long moments of silence “We will need to tell Marie soon” she proclaimed in a pained tone.

Lexa nodded absentmindedly, her mind was still trying to search for something frantically, anything really which they could have overlooked and what might still save their daughter somehow. Marie was certainly old enough to be allowed to have a say about trying this treatment or not. The fact that the child had already seen her own mother undergo this treatment would certainly assure them that Marie truly understood just what was at stake.

Roan’s crowning was scheduled to take place in a few hours, in the meantime the Ice queen’s body was being burnt to ashes. Due to the honourless way in which she had died, her pyre would be burnt outside of the capitol, away from watching eyes.

Lexa hoped that Marie would be up to attending the crowning ceremony, although she wondered why that would even matter any longer now. But she did not wish to have this conversation with Marie now, she wanted a few more hours to contemplate their possibilities and she wanted Marie to have a few more hours of relative peace. She could only try to fathom how the child would react to the news of her health.

How did someone live with the knowledge that they were in the process of dying?

 

Chapter 245

Lexa felt her heart being weighted down heavily on the way back towards her quarters. They had not spoken a single word since leaving the throne room and Clarke’s words still rang loudly through her mind. She may not have understood everything of what the blonde Skykru woman had been trying to tell them, but she had understood enough to realize that they were in fact going to lose their daughter. It seemed to only be a matter of time before the girl’s body would give out on her. Lexa did not know how they should come to a decision regarding the option to let the child receive treatment. They would need to travel to Arkadia for it – there was no doubt in her mind that Anya would agree to let Marie go there on her own and neither would she, no matter what could come up between the clans – and she knew that Marie would not wish to return there and specifically to the medical bay, too many bad memories were linked there within their daughter’s mind. It had not sounded as if the treatment Clarke proposed had a great likelihood of actually being beneficial for Marie either. It was absolutely clear that the treatment would increase the girl’s suffering and Lexa was not sure at all if this suffering was worth the potential of a slightly elongated life span left for Marie. She did not wish for Marie to have to suffer any more, but could she sit back and do nothing and later not question herself if the treatment might not after all have had the potential to save Marie? Or could she decide together with Anya for their daughter that she would get the treatment, no matter if she actually wished so, in the hope of getting just a little bit more time with Marie, only for the girl to die in agony?

Lexa sighed deeply, feeling more overwhelmed with the weight of this decision than with any decision she had had to make before. She had been groomed and raised to make harsh choices. So why did this decision now feel so hard to make? Before the lives of hundreds of people had often been at stake because of a single decision she made and now she felt internally paralyzed with the what-ifs of this single decision which truly only concerned their daughter.

She felt a definite surge of bitterness course through her mind as she thought about the harsh fate which awaited their daughter. The child was still so young and innocent – no matter through how much she had been through by now, she had retained a certain kind of innocence – that Lexa could only cuss all the higher powers which were so unbelievably unfair to the girl. Marie still had so much to see, so many things to learn and so many things to experience. An entire life should still be awaiting her and the concept of only a few weeks or months at best being left for her, made her heart weep painfully.

Which weighed almost heavier on her mind than the decision they would have to make in the next days was the feeling of being utterly powerless. As the commander Lexa had always been told that she needed to portray this image of the invincible and all mighty symbol of power and now she had to realize just how false this was. There was absolutely nothing being commander now could do to help Marie.

Lexa glanced over at Anya and saw her own dark thoughts being reflected within the troubled brown eyes of her former mentor. She had no idea how the general would cope with it, once Marie would have truly left them. She had seen the woman spiral into a dangerous mood of everlasting anger and violence before while they had thought Marie lost to Nia. She had feared for her sanity back then and her own duties had made sure that she herself could only break down behind the closed doors of her private quarters. Lexa could only imagine just how much more deeply they would both be cut now by truly losing their daughter and this time there would not even be the faintest hope left of her still being alive somewhere. She was almost certain that she would not just be losing her daughter but also Anya and she would need to let her go. She would need to learn again to patch her torn heart together enough to function and in the depth of her mind Lexa knew that she would do so. She would feel empty and nothing more than the shell of a person, but she would still be the commander her people needed and it would need to be enough to keep her going.

Lexa felt almost guilty at the shell shocked look Ontari wore and she was fairly certain that she had never seen the nightblood girl wear such an open and expressive look before. They had both known that the girl was deeply connected to their daughter also both of them still did not really understand their unlikely friendship. She wondered now if it might not have been better to keep the nightblood girl in the dark about Marie’s exact condition, but she hoped that it would make it easier for Ontari to deal with Marie from now on. It had sounded from Clarke’s words as if they should be expecting Marie’s physical condition to decline rapidly now after all.

Lexa mused if trying to make the best out of the rest of the time they would be granted with Marie might not be the best course of action. Maybe they should accept that every day now could be the last day and try to have Marie experience as much as possible still. She did not know if taking the girl on a journey was truly the best idea. Would they exhaust her already weakened body quicker this way? She darkly wondered if it even mattered any more.

Her thoughts came to an abrupt halt, when they stepped out of the elevator on the top floor of the tower and Marie’s bright laughter faintly resonated from behind the closed doors to her quarters. Lexa felt something click within her mind, she would not force treatment on Marie. The child deserved to enjoy all the time she had left to her fullest after all. If Marie chose to have treatment it would be a different matter but she would not decide for her.

~ ~ ~

Marie’s lips curved into a smile when Gustus proposed to her to play a game together. Thus far she had not seen any real board games being played around here, but apparently, she had been wrong to assume that none existed. She had never heard of the game before, Gustus had called it “Seint” and she soon found it similar to the Ludo game she had played in school with Maura before.

She had no idea if Gustus was truly annoyed when she managed to kick out one of his players from the board or if he was just exaggerating his reaction for her sake, but she found his mimics absolutely hilarious. She wondered why Lexa and Anya had never shown her the game before or she had never seen the nightbloods play it either.

Marie’s smile grew, when she recognized that she could close the match with her next draw. She moved the dices between her fingers, internally chanting a “please, please, please, come on!” to spur them on and she let out a loud squeal of triumph when she noticed that the dices showed exactly the number which she needed to win. She moved the last meeple over the board and looked up at Gustus, broad smile on her features. “I won” she exclaimed triumphantly, grey eyes twinkling with joy.

Gustus nodded his head with a grimace on his own face and although he seemed to be annoyed about having lost, his dark eyes gazed kindly at the girl. He was only relieved that he had finally found a method of diverting the girl’s attention from the time which seemed to pass slower than usual.

Marie immediately whirled around in her place, when she heard the doors to the commander’s quarters being opened and a look of utter relief passed over her features “You are back” she proclaimed, already standing up and moving in their direction.

She hesitated for a moment, when her eyes noticed the splatters of blood on Anya’s face and her smile fell visibly “Is that your own?” she questioned in a small voice, grey eyes focused on the already dried blood.

Anya quickly shook her head, trying to muster a kind expression for the girl. But the knowledge that Marie was indeed in the process of dying weighed too heavily on her mind right now. Internally Anya was torn between wanting to steal away for a few hours, needing time to process all which they had been told in private, and having felt the almost burning need to see that Marie was still there. Hearing the girl laugh and seeing her turn around with a joyful expression had soothed some part of the hurt still coursing through Anya’s mind at least for the moment. She excused herself to the bathroom, striding through the room quickly.

Marie watched Anya pass her with a frown, the woman had not even made the attempt to reach out and touch her in any form. Ontari and Lexa also wore rather austere expressions and she tilted her head to the side slightly, wondering if something might have happened during the execution. When an involuntary shudder ran through her own frame, Marie mused that Ontari might also be reminded of her own time with the queen and Lexa had lost her first love to the woman, so she guessed that it was only logical for them to be emotionally affected to see the queen finally dead. Or was she not dead at all? Could someone have rescued her and that was why they all seemed so off?

She stepped slightly closer to Lexa, gazing up at the woman for a moment, trying to assess her mood and if she would be welcome to speak now or if she should better remain silent. “She is dead now, is she not?” Marie asked in a low tone, holding her breath slightly in anticipation of the answer, lightly biting on her lower lip.

Lexa reached out gently, when she noticed that the girl was biting down more strongly on her own lips “Nia is dead, she will never harm you again” she reassured the child in a soft tone, letting her hand linger for a moment with a loving caress.

Marie leaned into the contact immediately and the shadow of fear left her features again as she breathed out a relieved sigh. When Lexa retracted her hand, Marie only stepped closer still, closing the distance between them and hugging the woman, pressing her face against her midriff.

Lexa let her arms curl around the child’s shoulder, intensifying their contact even more. They remained that way for long moments and Lexa internally tried to ingrain the feeling of her daughter into her mind forever, taking in each detail with clarity.

For a moment, Lexa imagine how Marie might look like as she matured, growing first into a gangly teen and later into a strong woman. She could vividly picture Marie like that and she wondered if the girl would have found love in her future or even settled down and start a family of her own. The knowledge that it never would come to this, was truly heart-breaking. She had never before tried to picture a future so far ahead for the obvious reason that a commander’s life was usually short and she had been taught from being able to walk that it was her duty to spent the short time of her life for her people’s sake and be content with it.

She forcefully quietened her thoughts after another moment, it helped no one right now to think in such ways. Lexa squeezed the girl’s shoulders once, before she gently eased out of their embrace “Are you feeling well?” she asked worriedly, eyes scanning over Marie’s face carefully. She did not know if her mind was making her see things, but it seemed to her as if the child was developing constant shadows under her eyes right now.

Marie frowned slightly at the question, but nodded her head in mute agreement. She was confused as to why Lexa and Ontari still both seemed to behave differently. If she did not know any better, she would have assumed that she might have done something. Ontari had not said a single word since returning to the commander’s quarters and Marie could still feel the other girl’s dark eyes resting on her constantly. Were they expecting her to break down now? She did not feel anything in particular right now when she thought of the queen. She had thought to be relieved once she was dead but she guessed that her mind had not caught up with the fact that she had nothing to fear from her any longer yet.

The time which they spent in the commander’s quarters together now still felt sort of weird. Something was wrong, Marie sensed that clearly, but when she had asked Anya about the reason for their austere mood, the general had just looked at her with deep sadness for the flash of a second before her expression had blanked over and she had assured her that everything was alright for now. Marie did not believe her for a second and she was confused as to why the woman was so clearly lying to her. Both Anya and Lexa demanded her to speak only the truth to them after all and it was crystal clear that they were keeping something from her.

Lexa had went into the bathroom to take a bath shortly after Anya had returned and Ontari had asked for some unknown reason to visit the rest of the conclave. Marie had watched the older girl leave with a frown and she was even more confused by the clear annoyance flashing over Anya’s face at Ontari’s request. The day before it had seemed that the general was pleased with the fact the Ice Nation nightblood now actively tried to form a bond with the other novitiates.

Anya seemed almost reluctant to let her get close now and Marie watched the woman with a deep frown. The general had sat down on one of the couches and held up the appearance of being busy with looking through various reports and maps. But Marie noticed quickly that the woman’s brown eyes kept on returning to her every few seconds. Almost hesitantly, Marie sat down next to Anya on the couch and she was deeply hurt when the woman stiffened and told her to sit somewhere else in a gruff tone, telling her that she needed to focus now.

Marie was now truly convinced that she must have done something to affront the woman. But she had absolutely no idea what it could be. Was Anya annoyed with the fact that she could train right now? Only being awake for some time now and just sitting around playing with Gustus and now watching Anya had already tired her out. Had there been another confrontation between the clans? Were they going to another war? Could someone have called out on Lexa for letting her stay in their quarters? Had her own weakness reflected on them?

Marie let her shoulders drop dejectedly as she inched away from the general slightly. All she had wanted was for the woman to let her stay close, like Lexa always allowed her and she did not understand why the woman was rejecting her now. Could she have decided that she could not handle taking care of two seconds at once? Maybe the general had decided that Ontari would be the better second. It was a reasonable assumption after all, Marie was sure that she would never match the older girl in strength and Anya had mentored Lexa before who had rose to take up command, she could never do that as she did not have the black blood. But Anya had promised that she was stuck with her as well and that they were family now. The general had said that she would adopt her at one point. With a sinking heart Marie thought that maybe that was the whole problem. Maybe Anya had second thoughts about that and just did not know on how to tell her. She had broken down a lot during the last weeks, it was probably no wonder that the woman was look at her as if she expected her to shatter any second.

Marie felt bitter tears burn in her eyes as her thoughts turned so dark. Maybe Anya had already told Ontari about it and that was why the nightblood girl had behaved so weirdly as well. It was possible that Ontari just did not want to be present when the general told her about her decision. Marie tried to internally steel herself for the rejection that she feared, maybe it would be easier if she told Anya that she could understand her change of mind. Who would want a child like her after all? She had been a fool to even believe otherwise for a second. She had lost her own family on the Ark and there no one else had wanted her as well.

Fear settled within her mind. What would happen to her when Lexa decided that she could not remain the commander’s second as well? She faintly remembered that Lexa had once told her that their bond of a first and second could only be severed by death itself. She sucked in a harsh breath remembering now that Titus had demanded at the beginning that she either be sent from the capitol, as far away as possible in fact, or to just have her executed. Marie guesses that too many people now knew about her being the commander’s second for her to simply be sent away. Where could she even go? Would Abby still take her back into Arkadia? She had dejected the woman’s intention months ago, so she doubted that this was still an option. She literally had no one left if Lexa and Anya were to sent her away.

When she felt the tears threatening to fall, Marie stood from the couch. Although Anya had watched her, she had not reached out once. She remained in the middle of the room indecisively, before she went over to the bathroom. She hesitated in front of the closed door for a moment and actually raised one of her hands to lightly knock on it – something she usually never did – but she did not know for sure right now if she would be welcomed inside or not.

She felt an inexplicable amount of relief at hearing Lexa call her inside immediately, maybe the commander was still convinced that she could be strong enough to be their second. Marie internally decided that she would try to be stronger now, push through her tiredness and proof that she had a place here still.

 

Chapter 246

Marie pushed the door to the bathroom open slowly, hesitating for the briefest moment before she truly entered. Internally fearing that Lexa might not truly wish for her company as well.

She found Lexa still submerged in the warm water of her bath, scented moist air hung heavily in the room.

Marie stepped closer to the bathtub, looking at the commander with intent grey eyes, trying to figure out the woman’s current mood before she would even say anything.

A slight frown settled on her features when it seemed to her as if Lexa’s green eyes seemed to show the signs of recent crying; they seemed slightly red-rimmed and a little bit puffy too if she was not mistaken.

“Do you need something, Marie?” Lexa asked in a calm and low tone, looking the child over quickly with worried eyes. She had been fairly certain that Marie would remain with Anya for the time being and was surprised by her sudden appearance. A small brutal part of her mind reminded her bluntly of the fact that these occurrences would not be repeating themselves for long now and she tried to swallow down the lump clogging her throat and making breathing all that more difficult.

Marie shook her head in the negative, she had not wanted anything from the woman than just being in her company, hoping to be more welcomed at her side. Anya’s apparent rejection still stung sharply and Marie was still trying to figure out a reason as to what she could have done wrong, beside obviously getting weaker physically all of a sudden.

“Are you feeling well?” Lexa questioned worriedly; green eyes fixed on the child’s face.

Marie shook her head in the negative again, although she could not deny that she could already feel another bout of fatigue building in her system. She sighed under her breath “When is the crowning?” she asked, keeping her distance from the bathtub. Before, Lexa had already offered her by now to join her in the bath but the commander was either close to finishing her bath or did not want her to join at all.

“In a few hours" Lexa answered easily while her eyes scanned the girl’s appearance again. The offer to let her rest through it instead of insisting on Marie’s attendance burned on her tongue. But she kept silent, feeling the weight of responsibility settle on her shoulders again.

They would need to tell Marie in clear word that the child was in fact dying and that there was nothing which truly could be done. How did someone have such a talk? Lexa regretted now on not having spoken with Marie about her experience of seeing her mother waste away with the same disease more in depth before. She did not know just much Marie had noticed back then and she thought it utterly possible that the girl would be shell shocked and afraid at the news. She herself did not particularly fear her own death, it was inevitable after all. The concept of having to watch her daughter die slowly felt so much more depressing than thinking about her own end ever had before.

When Lexa felt tears burn in her green eyes again, she closed them tightly, refusing to let them fall in front of Marie. Lexa felt the need to just tell Marie what was wrong with her battle with not knowing on how best to tell her, afraid of saying the wrong things. “You should get more rest now" she proposed in a tight tone, trying to keep a hold on her composure.

Marie’s brows knitted together “I only feel a little tired" she reluctantly agreed.

“Go to bed!” the words came out much harsher than Lexa had intended them to be and she felt even worse at seeing the girl flinch at her raised tone and almost flee out of the bathroom again. She sighed under her breath, burrowing her face in her hands, guilt and uncertainty eating at her innards. How should they ever tell their daughter that she was dying?

Marie jumped a little in place at Lexa’s raised tone and quickly turned on her feet, hurrying out of the room. She closed the door carefully and her shoulders sagged in defeat. Neither Anya nor Lexa seemed to want to be in her company any longer and she felt the realization that she must have disappointed them much greater than she could have assumed settled heavily in her mind. It coiled in her stomach like a beast, making her feel sick and she shook slightly.

Marie felt her breath hitch a little when a short glance at the couch told her clearly that either the general had not even turned around at all or had already returned her attention to the maps distributed in front of her on the table, which just confirmed again that Anya did not wish to speak with her right now.

Feeling miserable altogether, Marie slowly trudged over to the bed, burying herself beneath the soft furs and clutching one of Lexa’s pillow to her chest, inhaling the woman’s scent for long moments and vehemently fighting against the urge to cry. She knew that crying was just another sign of weakness and if the two women already thought of her as being too weak to remain with them, she would probably only give them more confirmation on their opinion.

After long moments of silence – which never had felt this oppressing before between her and Anya – Marie sat up in the bed again and reached out to the small table standing beside the bed. Her journal had still been lying on it and she took it into her hands again. Marie internally wondered if she would feel even the slightest bit better if she wrote down what she feared would happen. She was not sure for what the two women were waiting to inform her of their change of status. Maybe Lexa still wanted her present for the crowning and would tell her afterwards?

Marie felt her heart beating painfully within her chest and her throat felt weirdly constricted all of a sudden.

She only noticed Lexa’s return to the main room against a loud rushing sound resonating through her ears long moments later.

Lexa’s eyes immediately sought out the bed and she was not really surprised that Marie had heeded her not so gentle advice to lie down again. She stepped closer to the bed and worriedly took in the pale quality of the child’s skin – the bruises left behind by Clarke’s fingers were all too visible now – Marie’s eyes were visibly open, but she seemed to be staring at nothing and her gaze was unfocused. “You do not need to rest, if you do not wish to" Lexa tried to admonish her previous briskness in a gentle tone.

Marie blinked a few times, before she truly recognized Lexa. She had only been lying on the bed for some time now without actually doing anything, as her thoughts had run wild within her mind. The journal was still in her hands, but she did not feel as if she would be able to write down anything now, her mind felt sort of numb even.

When her eyes finally focused onto the commander’s face, she was slightly taken aback to find her green eyes once again gentle and kind, worry visibly tinted them slightly darker though. “Are you in any kind of pain?” Lea asked worriedly, when Marie failed to react and it seemed to her as if the girl could have been crying. She was unsure as to how quickly they should be expecting Marie’s health to decline and how rapidly it would decline as well and se thought that they could probably not be over cautious now. Keeping a closer eye on the child constantly, would now be more important than ever.

Marie shook her head again in the negative, she was only experiencing a very light headache still, but nothing which she would not be able to handle without the aid of another tea. When she noticed Lexa reaching out and the woman quickly felt her forehead for her temperature, Marie subconsciously leaned into the gentle touch for a brief moment, before she pulled back, sitting up under the furs, bringing her knees to her chest and looking up at the woman with a mixture of accusation and sadness lingering in her grey eyes. She did not know for what Anya and Lexa were really waiting and she had come to the conclusion that it would not hurt any less if she had to wait longer, but that it would probably be better to just hear the blunt truth now.

A confused frown settled on Lexa’s features when the child moved actively away from her, something she could not remember Marie had ever done before and she felt her worry rise tenfold, wondering if the girl was truly alright or just pretending to be for their sake. She knew that they had probably both appeared off to Marie at their return to her quarters and the girl’s drastic change of mood only confirmed that as well. The child was not dumb after all, but often very perspective even. She internally wondered again how they should be able to tell her that she was suffering from a deadly disease without a real chance of a cure. But she also guessed that it would neither be fair nor possible not to tell her. Lexa highly doubted that she and Anya could act around Marie as if nothing was wrong without the girl catching on to something and she did not wish to imagine to what conclusion Marie would come on her own as to what was wrong.

When Marie seemed to almost cower beneath the furs, Lexa had to realize sadly that their way of behaviour must have already affected their daughter greater than she had assumed. She was still searching for the right words to say internally, when Marie suddenly spoke up.

Marie raised her head from her knees a few moments later, suddenly unnerved by Lexa’s continued stare, and her voice raise a little, as she already felt fresh tears burning with her eyes “When are you gonna sent me away?” she exclaimed, lower lip trembling slightly.

Lexa could only blink at the girl in astonishment for a moment and from the corner of her eyes, she absentmindedly noticed Anya standing from the couch as well, making her way over to the bed with quick strides. “Send you away?” Lexa echoed after a moment, utterly confused as to what the girl was eluding to. She was fairly certain that Anya would not have said anything in that direction to Marie and sending the girl away was surely the last thing on both of their minds right now.

A tear fell down Marie’s cheek unbidden and she rubbed it away with a slight grimace, trying to put on an unaffected front somehow, although she knew that she was failing miserably in her attempt as well. “I am sorry…” she said, grey eyes shining intently and she swallowed forcefully to keep herself from truly crying now, looking between Anya and Lexa for a moment.

“For what?” Lexa asked, still kind of perplexed as to what must be going on through Marie’s mind right now. She felt her already rather deep guilt, only increase at the child’s clear misery.

“For being so weak” Marie admitted with a frown, disappointed in herself flashed through her eyes momentarily, before it was replaced with an almost bitter kind of resignation “I understand that I can’t be your second any longer” she added the proclamation almost confidently and was internally proud with herself that she managed to hold Lexa’s intense gaze for a moment, before she dropped it to her knees, fiddling with a thread of the fur nervously. She was afraid of where she would be sent now and her stomach had coiled into tight knots by now and she was glad that she had barely touched lunch, or she would have probably vomited by now again.

Anya’s brown eyes widened in almost horrified disbelief as to what conclusion Marie had come to from their behaviour and she felt her heart clench painfully. She had tried to push the child away momentarily before, needing some moments alone with her thoughts to process the concept of their daughter dying soon and she had not even considered how her colder demeanour might affect Marie.

Lexa reached out and forced the girl to look up again, connecting their gazes once again “I do not know how you have come to that conclusion, little star, but we will not be sending you anywhere, neither are we disappointed by you” she said in a strong tone, green eyes showing her absolute conviction and honesty. Internally Lexa felt her heart bleed for the girl, they had obviously both been fools to even assume for a moment that they could keep their daughter in the dark. She felt the weight of what they needed to tell her settle onto her shoulders again and she sighed deeply, caressing the girl’s chin lightly. Before she could actually open her mouth to try and begin the talk which she internally dreaded so much right now, Marie began to cry in earnest.

“You are not?” Marie sobbed out, looking at Lexa with wide grey eyes, swimming in tears. The usage of her nickname had reassured her, that the woman was truly speaking the truth, she would surely not continue to use this term of endearment

Lexa shook her head with a decisive expression. How could they ever be disappointed in the girl for being sick? “We are not disappointed and you will not be sent away” she repeated her previous reassurance in a heavy tone, feeling a lump clog her throat.

Marie let go of her own knees quickly, pulling herself to her knees and launching herself at the commander full force, nearly knocking both of them from the edge of the bed in the process.

Lexa quickly tightened her arms around Marie’s smaller frame, pulling the child even closer and she let her hands soothingly card through her blonde hair, feeling her body shake within her arms at the force of the sobs wracking through it. Each of her daughter’s sobs felt like a stabbing wound pierced right through her own heart, being all too aware of the fact that their own behaviour had caused this reaction and she just knew that the news of her disease would surely only increase the girl’s current suffering.

Anya sat down on the edge of the bed, close to Lexa and immediately placed her own hands on the girl’s back “It is alright, little star, everything will be alright” she tried to reassure the girl, feeling herself how lacking her words were now, while she just hoped that the girl would calm down before she had a full-blown panic attack as well.

Her gaze bandied with Lexa’s for long moments, while they waited for Marie to calm down again. They both knew that they truly needed to speak in all honesty with Marie now, delaying to do so would not make it any easier later for neither of them, but she also had no idea on how to break the news to their daughter. She felt the pressing need to protect the girl from even the littlest bit of more pain which they could possibly shelter her from.

“Marie?” Lexa asked after long silent moments had passed and the girl’s sobs had audibly died down.

“Mmmh?” Marie hummed, keeping her face still pressed against Lexa’s neck and only looking up slightly.

“Are you feeling better now?” Lexa questioned next. She was still fervently trying to think off a way on how to start their conversation.

Marie shrugged slightly as an answer; her headache had only increased because of her crying now. She felt almost close to being able to fall back asleep, feeling Lexa’s fingers still carding through her hair soothingly.

Lexa pushed the girl slightly into an upright sitting position, letting her gaze travel over the girl’s pale complexion. It seemed that she had gotten even paler in the last days, added together with the growing shadows under her eyes, the girl visibly had a sickly complexion.

Marie frowned a little at being pushed away again and she tilted her head to the side. She felt her senses sharpen, when she once again noticed the almost palpable sadness lingering within Lexa’s green eyes and when she threw a glance at Anya, she recognized the same expression in her brown orbs, staring at her so intently. Something truly must be wrong, that much was obvious and she guessed that they were finally going to tell her what had been on their minds.

When no one said anything after another few moments, Marie’s frown deepened “Is something wrong?” she asked worriedly. She had absolutely no clue what could be wrong otherwise.

Lexa tried to keep her expression calm and composed, although she felt it getting slight cracks. She took a deep breath, letting her hand caress gently over the girl’s cheekbone “How much do you remember about your mother’s disease, little star?” she asked in a careful tone.

Marie’s frown deepened further at the seemingly off-hand question. From the fact that Anya had been looking through maps, she had guessed that there might be another war soon, so she could not understand where this was going now. Little flashes of memories went through her mind quickly, she had not thought about her mother in a rather long time and if she ever thought of her mother, she always tried not to think of the last weeks with her. It had been painful to watch her get weaker with the clear proof that whatever Abby had been trying to do to help her, was not having any real effect at all.

“I don’t understand” she finally settled on as a vague and uncertain answer, looking between both of the women fleetingly.

Lexa’s gaze turned even sadder and her voice came out as nothing more than a wavering whisper “Clarke suspects that your symptoms stem from the same disease…”.

Marie blinked owlishly at Lexa while the commander’s last words kept on replaying themselves within her mind, but she was not able to make any sense of them against the suddenly all too loud hammering of her own heart.

“I don’t understand…” she repeated in a slightly wooden voice, still trying to process the words.

Lexa bandied another worried gaze with Anya.

“According to Clarke the symptoms which you are experiences for some time now, match to the disease your mother had” she tried to reformulate the essential information, but to her dismay Marie’s expression remained blank. Lexa sighed under her breath, taking one of the girl’s hands into her own and letting a finger brush over her knuckles repeatedly “You have been increasingly tired, lacking a real appetite, your nosebleeds and now the easy bruising of your skin…” she tried to explain and stopped for a second, trying to remember the special term Clarke had used.

Marie frowned and it was as if a switch had been flicked within her mind and suddenly, she was assaulted by snippets of numerous memories. She remembered a few instances of returning from a lesson or having been with Maura and her mother to find her mother holding a piece of tissue against her nose, bleeding again. Her mother had usually sent her away when it happened and she remembered now that she had not only seen her mother bleed from the nose.

She remembered one scene in horrifying clarity in particular again. Her mother had already known about being sick back then and she had been getting increasingly weaker as the time had passed. Marie had very occasionally accompanied her mother to the medical bay when she received her treatment – no one had probably been available to watch over her and her mother had not wished to leave her alone in their quarters for some reason – her mother had always been given some pills from Abby and an injection as well. It had not taken very long until she had begun to vomit and to her it had seemed as if that had continued for hours. Marie had sat next to her mother’s bed and had held her hand through it. Once her mother had drifted off, she had asked or rather begged Abby to give her mother something that actually helped, it had not seemed to make her mother any better but rather the opposite. She had usually been sleeping through most of the next days and once she was being more awake, her mother had needed to return to the medical bay to receive another round of treatment and it had begun anew.

The scene which she now remembered so clearly again, had happened after a few weeks of her mother receiving treatment already and she had returned to their quarters after her lessons, hopeful that she would be awake again. She had frowned when she had not spotted her mother in bed and when she heard weird sounds from the small bath, she had gone into it to investigate and remained frozen in the door for a moment. Her mother had been standing in front of the small mirror and whole strands of her blonde hair seemed to have fallen out, distributed around her. When her mother had heard her inhale sharply, she had turned around to face her and Marie’s eyes had widened even further at seeing almost her complete face being smeared in blood. Her mother had opened her mouth to say something, but had turned around again sharply, vomiting even more blood. Marie remembered having run all the way to the medical bay, screaming for a doctor to come and help save her mother.

It had only been a few days later that her mother had been released from the medical bay again with the verdict that there was nothing more they could do, not allowed to administer more doses of the medication and  Marie had tried to break into the medical bay to steal them, leading to herself being imprisoned and her mother being floated probably.

“…Clarke called it “acute lymphocytic leukaemia”” Lexa added after a brief pause, pulling Marie out of her thoughts again.

Marie’s grey eyes were visibly wide, while her thoughts were still running wild within her mind. She vaguely recognized the term of the disease, so she nodded her head in shocked acknowledgment mutely. She was truly and utterly speechless for now and simply continued to stare numbly at Lexa, turning her hand in hers and holding it in a tight grasp.

“Clarke said that they could offer to give you a treatmen…” Lexa tried to continue her explanation but was interrupted by Marie.

The child’s eyes were even wider now and she fervently shook her head, remembering vividly how bad her mother had been doing with the treatment. Her mother had been even more tired, had vomited a lot, lost her hair and even vomited blood and all the treatments had not seemed to help even a little. “You can’t allow Abby to put me through that!” Marie exclaimed in a raised tone, tinted strongly with fear “I don’t want to lose my hair and vomit blood and constantly sleep and …” she listened off all the reasons which immediately stuck in her mind what her mother had suffered through and what she did not wish to have to go through as well. Fear settled into her mind as she thought of having to go through that as well and she still knew so clearly that it had not helped her mother one bit.

Lexa squeezed the girl’s hand lightly, reaching out with the other and closing the girl’s mouth gently “Calm down, little star” she tried to sooth the girl in a soft tone “We will not force you to receive this treatment…”. Lexa paused for a moment letting her hand rest on the girl’s cheek softly “…Clarke has explained to us already that the treatment is harsh. The chances of it working are very slim sadly” she added in a heavy tone, green eyes tinted with regret.

Marie swallowed forcefully and her voice was audibly bitter “It has not helped her at all”. It took her long moments to ban the last memories she had off her mother from her mind again and once she could focus again on the presence, a single question burned heavily on her mind. What would happen to her when she did not receive the treatment?

~ ~ ~

Anya had kept one hand on the girl’s back and she watched her face intently, trying to decipher the emotions flitting so quickly through her grey wide eyes. Marie looked even smaller and younger now than ever and she wished with all her might that there would be anything she could possibly do to avert the girl’s fate. It was obvious that the girl was afraid of what this now meant for her and her whole body seemed tense, while tears glistened within her grey eyes. She did not know if they would need to spell out the fact that Marie would die in the foreseeable future or if the girl was already aware of that herself.

Lexa gently caressed the girl’s cheek once again “What do you think about visiting the ocean?” she proposed in a soft tone. She still thought that they should to try to make the best of the remaining time they would have with Marie. She would need to speak with Clarke again, trying to get a more specific definition of the time from the healer. If it really were only weeks left, she would not hesitate for one second to leave the capitol with Marie for this time span then, no matter what Titus would say.

Marie’s breathing was a bit quickened when she faintly heard Lexa’s words, penetrating through the whirlwind of her thoughts. She opened her mouth to answer her, but something else came out instead “I am going to die, am I not?” her voice had been completely wooden and she felt a few pieces instantly fall into place at having said that out loud.

The deep sadness which was now again so visible within Lexa’s and Anya’s eyes was answer enough without the women actually saying something. Marie felt her throat constrict painfully when her mind threw her back to the medical bay of Arkadia and how she had later apologized to Lexa for having almost left them, she would leave them now then.

“I am sorry…” Marie breathed out against her tears, shoulders sagging in internal defeat.

She had not really thought about what would happen now that the war was over. She had assumed that they would just return to Polis and her daily routine would take up again. She had asked Lexa weeks ago about going to the ocean and the commander had answered her then that it would probably have to take until winter had passed. She had taken it for granted that she would be there to see the foal grow up, continue her training with Anya and finish her education with Titus for her role as the commander’s second. But nothing of this would come to pass now.

She did not know for sure if her mother had only gotten worse so quickly because of the treatment or if it would have gone even quicker without it.

“There is nothing you need to be sorry for” Lexa assured the girl in a breathy tone, trying to hide some of the grief already consuming her mind.

“But I’ll leave you…” Marie breathed out, with tears already running down her cheeks again “I don’t wanna leave…” she exclaimed with a sob and her shoulders already shook.

Lexa and Anya moved forward almost in sync, enveloping the girl on both sides and pulling her smaller body in between them, even slightly as if they were shielding her from the rest of the world. It would have been so easy, if it actually worked like that.

 

 

Chapter 247

After their conversation, Marie had quickly fallen back asleep. Lexa and Anya had remained on the bed with the girl until they were completely sure that the child was indeed asleep.

“So, you think that her not having this therapy is the right decision?” Anya spoke into the silence in a low tone, keeping a hold on one of the girl’s hands. She was not sure that this was the right decision, but she did not know if forcing the girl into the therapy would be any better either. The girl’s fingers were no longer completely free of callouses and various thin scars littered them as well, but they were still so very small in comparison to her own long fingers. She could not stop the thought from forming in her mind that they would also not get the chance to grow at all.

Lexa looked down at the girl with sad eyes “I hope so” she answered with doubt tinting her tone strongly. She did not think there was a right or wrong decision in this kind of situation “I do not think that forcing her or convincing her to take the treatment is right though”.

Anya inclined her head in mute agreement, giving the girl’s hand a gentle squeeze before she let go again and stood up. “You plan to take her to the boat people?” she asked after another moment, walking over to the couch. She was not sure that making a journey with Marie in her current state and expecting it to only decrease quickly, was really a wise decision either.

Lexa lingered at the bed for a moment longer, before she joined Anya on the couch. “You know how much she wishes to see the ocean” she justified in an even tone, before her expression turned sad “I had promised to take her there while she was in a coma in Arkadia” and she desperately wished to make this promise come true.

Anya inclined her head again; she had been told later that the girl had been aware of every word which had been spoken around her during her time in the coma. “What about Ontari?” she mused, brown eyes shortly flitting back to the bed, checking that Marie had not moved and was alright. Marie still regularly used her powers during the night to heal each and every scratch they had during the night and in the morning the girl did not even remember doing so at all. The longer they would travel with Ontari in such a small group, the likelier it would be for her to find out about Marie’s talent although it was questionable if it mattered any longer.

Lexa contemplated the question internally for long moments, she was saved form giving an answer by a light knock on their door. “Enter” she called out a little unwilling, looking back over her shoulder to see that she had not woken Marie up.

Clarke hesitantly entered the commander’s quarters with a troubled expression, her blue eyes flitted to the huge bed and she immediately spotted Marie’s sleeping form on it. “I wanted to check if she is alright” she justified her presence in a worried tone.

“She knows now” Lexa said, expression almost downtrodden “and she does not wish for the treatment you offer” she added after a moment.

Clarke frowned slightly at hearing this, feeling her shoulders sag a little, in all honesty, she had already expected this turn of events. She had hoped that they would try the treatment, but only because she believed that it was the only chance for Marie to recover, even if it was just slim. She nodded her head after a moment of consideration, she did not think it wise to try to convince them differently.

“So, do you plan to stay with her here or really taker her on a journey?” she asked hesitantly, trying not to overstep.

Lexa nodded her head in agreement “It is not settled yet, but I want to leave as soon as possible” Who knew after all how much time they still had left with Marie, so it felt to her that they should not waste a single day.

“I will get in touch with my mother then to have medication sent here which will help Marie” Clarke proclaimed confidently “Will one of your healers travel with you?” she asked after a short pause of silence.

Lexa shortly bandied a glance with Anya. Taking one of her healers would of course be an option, but in her mind, Clarke would be best equipped to observe and take care of Marie. When the girl was really supposed to take medication from the Ark it would probably also be wiser to have Clarke administer the medication then. “We would ask you to accompany us instead” she proclaimed in a calm tone, holding her blue-eyed gaze for long moments “You are versed better in this treatment” she added.

Clarke inclined her head in agreement “I will come with you of course” she agreed easily.

“I will speak with Titus later and organize everything, if it goes over quickly, we can leave tomorrow or the day after” Lexa mused with a concentrated expression on her features. She did not look forward to having to speak with Titus about her intention. The flamekeeper would never agree to her leaving the capitol for a prolonged time now that they had just returned and Lexa knew without a doubt that she had no intention of returning to the capitol before Marie’s death, they could continue to either stay with the boat people or travel somewhere else if Marie’s constitution remained better for longer than expected.

Clarke excused herself only a moment later, not sure of what to say. She had told them all there was to know for now and they would see the effects of the medicals she could offer to Marie to make it easier for the child when she could administer them.

“I shall speak with Titus now” Lexa sighed, not looking forward to this talk at all. But if she wished to leave as soon as possible, the flamekeeper could start with the organisation right away.

She stood from the couch, but shortly walked over to the bed first, feeling the girl’s forehead once, before she bent down and pressed a light kiss to Marie’s forehead.

Lexa left her quarters with her thoughts running wild through her head still. She was already second guessing if this decision was the right one or not and she still wondered if taking Ontari with them would be advisable. The nightblood girl seemed to have been hit hard by the news of Marie’s impending death as well and their deep friendship would make taking her with them reasonable. On the other hand, there were so few nightbloods left now, that taking the girl from the capitol carried a rather great risk. She did not know how Anya and she would cope with having to watch Marie die and she did not wish to add this burden to the nightblood girl’s conscience.

She found the flamekeeper down in the temple of the flamekeepers. The bald man seemed surprised to see her approaching him.

“Commander” Titus inclined his bald head in greeting, confusing flashing over his features momentarily.

“I need you to handle the daily dealings within the capitol for the foreseeable future and have preparations made for a small group to travel with me to the boat people” Lexa proclaimed in a firm tone, not wanting to give the man much room for any discussion.

Titus light frown only grew and definite reluctance settled onto his features. “What can be so important with the boat people to require immediate travels to their place?” he questioned in an almost cautious tone.

Annoyance flashed over Lexa’s features at being questioned like that by her former teacher, but she unfortunately had expected that the man would not accept this travel without getting a real reason for its necessity. She sighed under her breath, feeling her composure shatter for the slightest bit, unable to hold on for now. “Marie’s health has been declining for some time now” she began to explain in a heavy tone, green eyes showing the depths of her inner turmoil easily.

Titus inclined his head in acknowledgement. He had outright criticised already that the commander’s second had not made any kind of progress in her education in weeks now and the girl had barely been able to sit in on to any meetings since her return from Azgeda. He believed without a doubt that the girl had regained her memories, but her mental state had been almost unpredictable from what he had heard from several guards. Although the girl’s fate did cause some sympathy, he still was not convinced that the child had what it took to be the commander’s second. The commander had silenced each and all doubt he had about the girl though, so he was confused as to what Lexa wanted to say now. “Her mental state has not been…” he began, but was interrupted by the commander immediately.

Lexa shook her head “This is not about her mental state” her voice had turned several shades darker and her eyes hardened “Her physical health is declining rapidly” she proclaimed in a firm tone “Her own mother has died of an incurable disease on the Ark and Marie suffers from it as well”.

Titus’ dark eyes widened subtly as his mind processed what the commander had just proclaimed and he sucked in a rather harsh breath. He knew just how hard the commander had been hit before while Marie had been presumed dead. He had seen Lexa almost break at the loss of her first love, had seen her almost break again at the presumed loss of the child. What would the real loss of the child do to Lexa? He barely dared to imagine it and knew already that they would be facing hard times then. He still did not truly understand what the disease had to do with a journey to the boat people.

“I will bring her to the ocean…” Lexa breathed out shakily, while her voice wavered.

Titus sighed slightly, the words to reason with the young commander burned on his tongue. The commander’s place was in Polis and nowhere else after all. But he knew now without a doubt just how deeply the connection between Lexa and Marie was and through the time he had to agree that the girl was tolerable.

So, he only nodded his head in mute agreement “I will start the preparations immediately”.

Lexa raised a brow in surprised question.

Titus’ dark eyes uncharacteristically showed his sympathy for once and his tone seemed hesitant “Leaving Ontari within the capitol would be advisable”.

Lexa inclined her head; Titus did not need to enumerate the logical reasons to leave the Ice Nation nightblood within the capitol after all.

~ ~ ~

Marie leaned back against Lexa’s firm upper body – she was currently sharing a horse with the commander – and thanks to the medication Clarke had gotten delivered from Arkadia, she was feeling better than she had in some time now. She was even feeling sort of giddy now, as they were on the way to the ocean finally. Lexa had promised her that she would show it to her before she would truly begin to feel worse.

Clarke had come to their quarters later that day, before the crowning had been scheduled to take place, and had spoken with her as well about what a chemotherapy meant and how much of a chance, she could have expected to get better with it. The chances really had not been all that great and Clarke had described the symptoms which she needed to expect from the chemotherapy and those corresponded clearly to what she remembered from her mother’s last months of her life.

Marie found the concept of her body slowly ceasing to function pretty hard to accept. It had been obvious that her body was getting weaker, she had subconsciously noticed the gradual decline for weeks, but she had never guessed that it could be so dangerous. The knowledge that there was nothing which could be done, weighed heavily on her, she had no wish to die just yet and by thus leave her place by Lexa’s and Anya’s side. Clarke had offered to describe to her more in depth what was happening to her body on a molecular level, but she had not been interest to listen to it.

She had been allowed to get some more rest before it had been time for the crowning ceremony of Roan. Lexa had shaken her awake only shortly before they had to leave the commander’s quarters. The crowning ceremony had taken place at the base of the tower as well, so that everyone who had wanted to attend had the opportunity to stand beside the podium. Many more people from different clans had come than Marie had previously expected. She had stood next to Anya during the ceremony. Once Ontari had shown up, Marie had looked over at the older girl and at least her torn gaze now made sense; Lexa had told her that Ontari had been present during Clarke’s diagnose. During the ceremony she did unfortunately not have the opportunity to speak with Ontari. 

Marie’s lips curved into a smile when she remembered how Roan had approached her after the ceremony, the crown resting on his head now.

She had still been rigid and weary around the man, although she logically knew that the Ice prince had done nothing personally to cause her any kind of harm. She had still tensed even further when Roan had approached her and Anya must have caught on to that fact, stepping closer to her protectively. She had looked up into his eyes – so similar to his mother’s – and tried to keep a straight face, reassured by Anya’s presence.

“You are safe now again, Marie” Roan had addressed her in a kind tone, keeping a slight distance to visibly give her some space “You will always be welcome in Azgeda to visit” he offered in an honest smile and at the fleeting smile hinting on her features, he added “You can certainly play in the snow really then and I might even be able to show you some harmless ice bears”.

 Marie’s smile had turned bigger at this addition to the offer and she had felt most of her tenseness drain from her body, she had trusted the man before after all and she gave him a thankful nod as an answer. Only after the man had stepped from the podium, speaking with other clan ambassadors, her smile had fallen, as she had remembered the fact that she would certainly never visit Azgeda again, nor would she ever see snow again for that matter.

Clarke had prognosed only vaguely but the blonde seemed convinced that she would either not see the next winter or at least not survive it.

Marie burrowed herself a little further back against Lexa’s body, feeling the commander’s arms tighten around herself to keep her steady and safely in place on the saddle.

“Are you alright?” Lexa asked, bending over slightly, to be able to take a glance at the girl’s features.

Marie nodded her head, although her smile had frozen noticeably “I remembered Roan’s offer to visit him” she sighed out, feeling her mood fall all of a sudden “But it will never be” she added forlornly.

Lexa sighed under her breath, wishing more than anything that she could somehow take this disease from the child. She did not know of what to say which could make it any better.

“How long will it take until we reach the ocean?” Marie asked, after a moment of silence, banishing the dark thoughts from her mind as forceful as she could; they would not help her in any way.

“A few days” Lexa answered easily, keeping the reigns in her hands and leading them ahead.

The group travelling with them only consisted of Gustus, Anya and Clarke. So, they would only have a spare camp for the nights until they reached the boat people.

Marie had tried to argue with Lexa about the fact that Ontari was supposed to remain in the capitol. The older girl had not really wanted to speak with her about what was going to happen. Marie had understood it quickly without a doubt that she would not be returning to the capitol at all and she had been sad to know that she would not have a chance to tell her goodbye to the nightblood girl.

She had tried to speak with Ontari about this fact, but the girl had been weirdly dismissive, telling her instead that they would see each other again. She had even agreed to look after Risha for her during her absence. She could not understand why the older girl seemed to refuse unwaveringly to accept that she was dying. Marie had gotten angry at the older girl and tried to force her to have a serious talk, but Lexa and Anya had intercepted finally when it was clear that their conversation would yield to nothing.

“Have you been at the boat people’s place before?” Marie questioned now in honest interest, trying to push all further thought about Ontari from her mind. She was utterly convinced that she would not get the chance to ever speak with the older girl now and following one of Lexa’s suggestions, she had written a letter to her instead. Just as she had written a letter to Maura and her mother, she had also written one for Lexa and Anya – although the two women did not know about them yet – they would all be handed to the recipients later.

“Yes, I have” Lexa answered in a calm tone and a slight smile on her features “I was around six summers old when Anya took me there”.

“Really?” Marie echoed, grey eyes shining with curiosity.

“Yes” Anya agreed from the side next to them “Lexa unwillingly learned to swim there” she added and her lips curved into a smile.

Marie frowned slightly, she recognized the tone of Anya’s voice and she remembered how the general had pushed her into the lake in TonDC during the bath, she had been so afraid then. Hopefully, Lexa would have more patience with her when they reached the ocean and that she physically would be able to swim still then. “Did you throw her into the ocean as well?” Marie asked critically.

Lexa huffed out a laugh at Anya’s almost dumbfound expression “Oh yes” she agreed, remembering the scene vividly still. Sometimes Anya’s lessons had a questionable method at best, but they always resulted in what they should one way or the other.

“Don’t throw me in again Mama, okay?” Marie asked in a slightly whiny tone “You won’t let her, Mommy, right?”

A gentle expression played around Lexa’s features “Of course not, little star” she reassured “You have nothing to worry over now” and how much she wished that here words could have been even remotely true.

 

 

Chapter 248

The journey continued mostly in silence until midday. It was not a really oppressive silence either but rather companionable and Marie let her gaze wander around the forest they now passed through.

“I still remember the first time I saw the forest around the drop ship” Marie suddenly exclaimed in a thoughtful tone, breaking the silence while her grey eyes took in the trees around them. Now that the summer had ended and autumn was near the leaves of the forest were beginning to turn from green back to wonderful yellow, orange and red hues.

Clarke rode slightly behind Lexa and Anya, next to Gustus and her and her own features turned into an almost melancholic smile as she thought back to the time directly after their landing. How naïve and optimistic they all had been back then, convinced to be alone on the surface of earth. None of them had known how harsh this world actually would be.

“The woods were so immensely green” Marie mused with shining grey eyes, looking back around now, although the trees were not even green right now “and I still remember how I saw the first bird break through the leaves” the wonder from back then was still present within her voice now. She remembered how she had rather chosen to be near the forest than the other delinquents, she had not understood why the others were just goofing around instead of doing something productive.

Lexa smiled slightly at the girl’s memory, they had all grown up immersed in the forest and she had found it fascinating to see a part of their world through the innocent eyes of Marie, a child not born into this world but rather into a cold and sterile surrounding made out of metal. She tightened her arms slightly around the girl’s smaller body “I have always loved the end of summer most, watching the leaves fall down”.

Marie smiled slightly which turned into a smirk “What have you thought when you first saw me?” she asked, turning around a little so that she could look at the general riding next to them, true interest glistened within her grey eyes.

Anya frowned slightly, the day back in TonDC seemed like it was almost out of a completely different life now and she had never thought that this child would be able to have such an impact on their lives. “From what Indra and my scouts had said, I had expected a highly skilled assassin and not a frightened child” she admitted honestly, her brows furrowed.

Marie looked over at the general with a slight pout on her features, she could sadly understand why Anya would assume so after she had met the other children at the queen’s fortress, all of them would have undoubtedly worked as an assassin for the queen. She had to admit that she had truly been frightened in the holding cell and it had only increased after John had been taken from it – she absentmindedly wondered for a second what had even become of the older girl, for all she knew he could already be dead now – “I was really scared” she admitted with a slight frown “you all looked so scary and angry…” a slight shiver ran through her frame as the memory resurfaced. She knew now that Indra had wanted her to be executed directly, even though she had not even done anything. “I had not been able to read anything from your face back then” she continued, she could now of course that she really knew Anya. “Tris calmed me though” Marie added after another moment.

Anya’s expression flickered with the loss of her previous second for a moment, before slight annoyance flashed over it “Tris had been supposed to guard you and not chat with you” she had been angry about it back then as well.

Marie shrugged her shoulders slightly “I liked her immediately” she said “She let me have some food and water as well and Tris told me about her life…” Marie paused for a second in thought “…I truly only realized then just how harsh life is here”.

Marie fell silent again, snuggling back a little firmer against Lexa. She knew that the life on the Ark and the life the people on the earth were leading could not really be compared because of so many factors, but on other things she thought it was just the same. And no matter how much simpler and even harsher the life on earth might be, Marie loved it, but also mostly because she had found her place here with Anya and Lexa, finding new moms in the process.

“How did you meet any way?” Clarke finally spoke up, breaking the silence again. She long wondered about that but somehow it had never come up in a conversation yet.

Marie cast a glance over her shoulder and a hint of accusation filtered into her eyes “After you and Bellamy cast out John, I followed him out into the forest” she began to enumerate and she minutely felt Lexa give her thigh a light pat and Marie curbed her tone again “I thought that I would never find John” she remembered “It had been so dark and cold and the sounds of the forest suddenly were so scary…” a slight shiver ran through her frame.

Lexa soothingly rubber a hand over one of Marie’s arms mutely. She could only try to fathom how frightful this experience must have been to the child. She knew from a report that the two Skykru members had been caught by a patrol.

Clarke knew that casting Murphy out had not been their best decision after all and it had sadly been true that no one in the camp had actually watched out for Marie; they had not even realized that their youngest was missing at all for a day or two.

“…I already thought that I would never find John when I heard something and when I followed the sounds, I found John trying to run from two masked figures and although I knew that I would never be able to out run them, I tried, but I stumbled and we were brought to TonDC and put into a holding cell, where I met Anya later and Tris” Marie continued and her voice had turned too low to understand anything for Clarke now “…and you” she breathed out twisting around slightly and glancing up at Lexa with a soft expression.

“And me” Lexa resonated in agreement, she unexplainably grateful that she and Anya had both decided to let the girl survive. She frowned slightly when Marie just continued to enumerate slowly what had happened from that point. It sounded awfully as if the child was mussing over all that she had gone through as if she was saying goodbye already. She had wanted Marie to enjoy this journey and not already be stuck in the past.

~ ~ ~

“Do you remember the first storm?” Marie asked, turning over to Anya again slightly. They had stopped their ride for now to make a short break. Gustus had left together with Clarke to let the horses drink some water from a nearby stream. She was helping Anya gather wood for a fire while Lexa had remained behind at what was going to be their makeshift camp for now.

“First storm?” Anya retorted; a brow raised in question as to what the girl was referring to now.

Marie stepped closer to Anya “I had never heard a real thunderstorm before” she remembered “and I had not been able to sleep and the thunder was so scary, I was sure that the tent would cave in”.

Realization dawned on Anya’s features, it had been one of their first nights sharing a tent together and she had been rather annoyed to be awoken by the girl’s shrill scream, although she knew that the girl had tried to muffle it. She had offered the only comfort to the girl which she had known to have helped Lexa and Tris previously. “I remember now” she agreed in a thoughtful tone “I had let you sleep beside me this night”. She had been surprised by how strongly the girl had latched onto her immediately and after the first time it had begun to repeat itself that Marie found her way to her side at night. She did know for sure if that night might have already been the turning point in their relationship, but it had certainly been the first step to bring them closer to each other.

Marie nodded with a slightly sheepish expression, crossing the last distance between them – task of searching for fire wood forgotten – as she hugged the woman “Love you” she mumbled sincerely, pressing her face against the woman’s midriff.

Anya remained frozen for a little second, before she unceremoniously let the wood in her arms drop down to her sides and let her arms come around Marie’s frame instead. “Love you too, my little star” she breathed out, bending down and pressing a kiss against the crown of Marie’s head.  She could never have known just how deeply she would care for her newly appointed second back then and now, looking back at the time they had spent together, Anya could not help but wonder if she might not have spent it differently with her, if she had known already that they would have only such a short time together.

They remained like this for long silent moments, until a twig audibly snapped next to them and Anya quickly loosened her hold of Marie, reaching for one of her daggers in case that a predator might have found them. She let her hands fall back to her side again, when she noticed that Lexa had caused the sound, probably deliberately as well.

Marie backed away from Anya with a slightly sheepish expression and quickly bent down to pick up the logs which Anya had let fell down before.

“How do you feel?” Lexa asked Marie with a soft expression and took a step towards Marie “Let me” she ordered and held out her arms to take over the logs for the girl. Clarke had warned them that Marie would only feel better, but the medication was not doing anything to improve her actual health situation at all.

Marie shrugged her shoulders “Fine, I guess” she answered vaguely. The medication had made her feel almost giddy and nervous for some time, but she had been able to feel the effects weakening gradually as well and it left a strange ache behind. “When can I get the next dose?” she asked instead with a slightly hopeful glint within her grey eyes.

Lexa frowned slightly, she thought to remember that the dose should have lasted Marie through the complete day and it was only shortly after midday now. Worry settled in her mind that they were overexerting the girl with their journey. She had not given any specific time to Titus to expect her return to the capitol and for once the flamekeeper had neither tried to argue with her nor had he outright disagreed either. So, they could easily cut down on the distance they travelled each day and by thus allow Marie more time to rest in between. Although Clarke had reassured her that Marie would surely hold on to see the ocean, the irrational fear had settled into her mind, that they would not be fast enough to reach their destination. “We shall speak with Clarke about it” she answered after a beat of silence. She did not wish the girl to receive too much of this medication either, which surely could not be good.

Lexa saw her own worry slightly mirrored within Anya’s brown eyes and almost as if on instinct the older woman reached out and felt Marie’s forehead quickly.

“No fever” Anya assessed with definite relief within her tone. They understood enough of this weird disease now to know that the girl’s body could catch any further illness now that it was so weakened and it would not be able to fight back any longer.

Marie frowned slightly; she did not really understand why the two women seemed so overly worried about her. She felt well enough still and she highly doubted that she would just suddenly drop dead like that either. But she could not exactly say that she was against their dotting completely, because it often prompted both of them to simply reach out to her physically.

~ ~ ~

They returned to their makeshift camp together and Lexa quickly asked Clarke about another dose of the medication.

Clarke sighed slightly “I have started her on the lowest dose possible, so yes, she could have another, but I would like to stretch that out as long as possible. Her body will react less and less to it the more and higher doses it gets” her tone was tinted with definite sadness at the end. She knew that letting Marie build up a dependency of the medication already now was not wise, while the girl was still coping relatively well with the leukaemia, because she knew that harder times were awaiting her.

Marie still seemed rather awake, so Lexa agreed that the girl could wait a bit longer to get the next dose but she also decided that they would stay at their current position for the rest of the day, giving Marie time to laze around and rest a bit. She wanted the girl to enjoy this journey after all and not tire her out to depletion before they even reached the ocean. Maybe the journey in itself was the actual goal, spending the rest of Marie’s time solely with her and away from Polis, it did not matter all that much just where they were. Lexa would love for Marie to see the ocean and maybe even let the girl have the opportunity to feel the waves washing over her feet. They would have to see then if letting her swim in the ocean was even an option anymore or not. The ocean could quickly turn into a dangerous element for an unpractised swimmer.

When Lexa denied Marie to actually help in raising the tent in which they would sleep together, while Clarke erected her own under Anya’s critical watch spiked with barely polite criticism, Marie sulked slightly, feeling useless at the moment and moved over to the horses. She wanted to contribute too and she did not understand why Lexa was denying her now, Anya had let her help in searching for fire wood after all, so why was this different now?

Her glum mood lifted slightly, when her gaze fell onto the horses and the memory of seeing one on earth for the very first time came back to the forefront of her mind. Before that she had only seen a few birds and the dead panther and although she had seen horses in a film before, the film had definitely not done justice to the magnificent beasts and she had immediately been enamoured.

The commander’s black horse already neighed in greeting when she stepped closer and Marie remembered that it had also been the very first one which she had ever touched and it had also gotten her to talk to the commander.

“Hi, beautiful one” she greeted the black horse with a smile, stretching out her fingers and lightly touching its nose, feeling its velvety skin “Do you still remember how we met?” Marie tilted her head slightly to the side, looking deeply into the horse’s dark eyes. She giggled shrilly when the horse blew out a puff of air directly into her face.

Lexa suddenly appeared at Marie’s side, having stood slightly behind the girl and having watched the girl interact with her war horse for a few moments unobserved.

“Food is almost ready” she proclaimed in a calm tone, caressing the horse’s neck with one hand, while the other came up to rest casually in between Marie’s shoulder blades.

Gustus had been lucky and encountered two rabbits directly in their vicinity who would now serve as their dinner together with some of the other reserves they had all distributed in the saddle bags.

Marie nodded her head in mute acknowledgement, petting the horse one last time, before she turned around to fully face Lexa and return to the middle of their camp. “I thought we would travel farther today” she remarked with a slight frown.

Lexa shook her head “Not today, no, there is no need to rush now” she reasoned with a hint of sadness underlining her tone; it refused to be banished from her mind completely.

Marie did not really appear to be convinced by this logic for now, but she did not outright disagree either. She could not deny that simply being able to spend time together with Anya and Lexa while they were not in fact still travelling did sound appealing. Her attention was diverted to Clarke and Anya only a second later anyway.

“I swear, Anya” Clarke exclaimed, blue eyes flashing in annoyance – it seemed her attempts to erect her tent were failing miserably – “if you don’t stop these comments, I will just knock you over with the post”.

Marie frowned slightly, tilting her head to the side. She would actually like to see Clarke trying to beat up Anya, she was fairly convinced that Clarke would not be standing even the slightest chance.

Anya let out a bark of laughter “Try me, you will not get a single hit in” she retorted in a nonplussed tone, inspecting her fingers for a second, before she looked up again at Clarke’s futile attempts “It will fall down again, if you leave the post like that.”

Clarke’s eyes flashed darkly and her hand tightened around the wooden post – Marie recognized that it actually resembled the wooden staffs she had trained with before, only a longer version of them – before she let it drop completely “I will just sleep without cover” she grumbled under her breath, stepping over to the fire and sitting down by it.

Marie giggled under her breath when her eyes connected with Anya’s minutely.

The general shook her head in mock annoyance “Still as mature as a petulant child, I see” she commented towards Clarke’s back and bent down quickly to retrieve the post and in only a few moments, she had single-handedly erected the tent.

Clarke had turned around slightly, glancing over her shoulder with a slight grimace “Could you not have just helped me from the beginning instead of mocking me?” she pressed out through clenched teeth, trying to ignore the obvious jab from the older woman.

“And where would the fun be about that?” Anya remarked with glinting brown eyes, sitting down by the fire as well and motioning Marie over, who had remained standing a slight distance away where the girl had apparently only watched their interaction.

Clarke huffed under her breath, rolling her eyes mutely and simply chose to remain silent, she knew that she would only fuel the fire if she reacted to the general’s weird sense of humour. She was still astounded just how easily Marie had somehow taken the general’s bearings in stride and still managed to even love the woman.

Marie’s grey eyes glinted with amusement when she sat down next to Anya, so close that she was immediately lightly leaning against the woman’s frame. When the general’s humour was not armed against herself, it certainly was funny. She had sat down on Anya’s other side, away from Clarke and leaving her own right side free, so she glanced up at Lexa with hopeful eyes.

Lexa’s gaze was chiding as she looked at her former mentor, but her expression turned gentle when she sat down beside Marie.  A slight smile graced her lips, when she noticed how Marie looked between the two of them with clear love within her grey eyes and a content expression on her features.

It seemed that Marie’s journey down memory lane was not finished yet and the girl began to talk again with a slightly dreamy expression “I still remember how…”.

Lexa let one arm curl around the girl’s back, listening closely to Marie’s recollection of what she had all experienced after landing on earth so far, and she felt one of Anya’s arms doing the same, brushing against her own. She was torn between laughing at a few of the girl’s memories and feeling tears burn within her eyes at the sinking knowledge that their daughter would soon be torn from their arms.

Anya listened to Marie’s tales with a melancholic expression, keeping all comments to herself for now. She breathed out a little laugh at the accusation within the girl’s tone at being labelled a “pauna” and later a “baby pauna” as the girl’s movements had slowly begun to get less noisy with practise.

Clarke listened to the younger girl’s experiences with interest, she had not been there to see almost all of them and it once again portrayed Anya and Lexa in a different light. It was clear without doubt just how much Marie loved both Trikru women in every word and it seemed obvious that the girl had felt connected to them fairly quickly as well.

It was striking that Marie only enumerated events in which Lexa and or Anya had been present for most time, the only real exemption was when the girl mentioned the dance she had shared with Gustus during Lincoln’s and Octavia’s wedding.

Gustus’ dark eyes were suspiciously wet and expressive as he distributed the food between them and handed a plate to the blonde girl. “It was a pleasure to dance with you” he offered lightly and Marie smiled brightly at him in response.

None of them could have ever predicted just how important this young girl who had fallen from the stars would be to all of them at on one point and just how much she would be missed once the child would lose her battle against her disease.

 

 

Chapter 249

They spent the rest of the day around the fire, chatting companiable and Marie soon picked up on the fact that Lexa and Clarke were in fact still interest in each other. Both of their expression flickered with something for a second when the other said something. She still did not really understand why Lexa had not forgiven the blonde healer for their fight and had chosen to break off things with her instead. She could not out right say that she liked Clarke, but she could also not deny that the older girl was taking great care of her now.

When it was time to retire for the night, Marie caught Lexa and Clarke banding a look for a long moment, but neither said anything. Marie was not able to identify the look exchanged between them, but for some reason it seemed to her as if the raw longing she had seen within Lexa’s green eyes previously was not there any longer and Lexa’s expression was completely clear again, when she joined them in their tent.

Marie had already gone into the tent with Anya and the general had ordered her to sit down and had begun to slowly take out the braids from the girl’s blonde hair. She had remembered something else a few moments ago, but was not entirely sure on how to bring up the subject. Anya had promised her once that she would adopt her and by thus officially claim her as her daughter, while Lexa had already told her that the same would sadly never be possible for her.

She felt Anya’s long fingers card through her hair soothingly, untangling it gently without pulling at any potential knots. Marie’s mind supplied a few instances where the general had been anything but gentle in this very same situation and she felt a sigh pass through her lips, she did not wish to be treated differently because she was sick but it seemed as if Anya was already handling her much more cautious than before.

Lexa slowly divested herself of her boots, discarding them on the side of the bunch of furs they would share for the night. The tent was so much smaller than the tent she usually used on her journeys but it would have taken them unnecessarily long to erect the real commander’s tent each night and they would have had to take at least one additional horse with them just to carry the parts of the tent. She had heard the sigh from Marie and turned to the girl with an inquiring expression “Are you feeling well?” she asked worriedly, inspecting her appearance quickly.

Marie sighed again and a slight flash of annoyance passed over her features “You do not need to treat me as if I’d just drop dead any second” she exclaimed rather hotly, casting an accusative glance over her shoulder at the general as well “I am here still and I am fine, I’ll tell you if I am not” she added after a second in a slightly calmer tone, lowering her eyes to her fingers and twisting them around nervously.

Lexa scooted closer to Marie and closed her hands over the girl’s fingers, stopping their movements for now “It is alright, little star, we only worry over you” she tried to appease the girl in an understanding tone. She guessed that it was reasonable for Marie to be easily irritated, the girl had to face the concept of dying soon after all, that could not weigh easily on her small shoulders.

Marie nodded with a sad expression “I know…” she agreed with another sigh and her expression was almost heart-breaking when she breathed out “I am sorry that I will be leaving you…”.

Lexa and Anya bandied a look for the flash of a second, both united in their impending grief for their daughter, before they enveloped the girl in their arms, keeping her close, which was all they could do at the moment.

Lexa said nothing about the fact that she felt the small scrap she had acquired during the journey heal over in a flash, it would be useless now to convince the girl on not using her powers any longer and she was not entirely certain that Marie was even fully conscious of healing them constantly now, it had happened so often now during the last moments between consciousness and sleep that Lexa was nearly convinced that healing them was an almost unconscious act for the child by now.

~ ~ ~

The night passed in relative peace – the medications Clarke was administering to Marie had a soothing agent in them so that the girl could sleep without the added stress of nightmare disturbing her sleep – and in the morning Marie finally spoke up about her musings from the prior night, while they were still lying under the furs together, allowing Marie a few moments of cuddle time before they would rise to continue their journey.

“Mama” she addressed Anya a little bit hesitant, burrowing herself further against Lexa’s firm body in search for support.

“Mmh?” Anya hummed, opening her eyes fully and turning onto her side, so that she could truly look at Marie.

“Could you maybe…” Marie began to ask, but seemed to lose courage halfway and stopped, lowering her eyes and fiddling with the hem of Lexa’s dark shirt.

Lexa’s features settled into a frown at the child’s clear insecure bearings, wondering what was going on with her.

“What do you want, little star?” Anya asked in a carefully gentle tone and she let a hand rest on Marie’s side.

Marie looked up at Lexa for a second, grey eyes wide and showing her doubts quiet clearly, before she glanced back over at Anya and after a beat of further silence she began anew “You had promised to adopt me at one point” she breathed out with a sigh filled likewise with deep disappointment at the fact that this would never be now and the encompassing longing to still officially become Anya’s daughter “would you still go through with it now?”.

Anya blinked at the girl for a second, completely caught off guard by the child’s question and she was only broken out of her haze when Marie’s eyes filled with bitter tears of rejection and the girl turned her back to her, burrowing herself fully against Lexa.

Lexa felt her throat clog painfully at Marie’s question, wondering for a moment if she could not let Luna officially go through with the ritual for herself and Marie. It would certainly not matter if the commander had adopted a child if said child had already died by the time they would have returned to the capitol.

Anya reached out again and soothingly rubbed over the girl’s back “Marie, look at me please” she addressed the girl in an almost pleading tone and waited for the girl to turn her head at least a little “If you still wish to, we can have the ceremony done with the boat people” she offered in a decisive tone, brown eyes gazing kindly at the child.

Marie’s gaze felt almost scrutinizing and her voice was small when she questioned “Would you want to?” her lower lip was trembling precariously already, trying to fight back the tears from falling.

Anya immediately nodded in agreement “Of course, little star” she reassured the girl without any hesitation in her tone.

Marie gave the general a watery smile and scooted back over to Anya, winding her arms around the woman’s neck and burrowing her face against the soft skin of her throat, hugging her close.

Lexa stayed on her side of the furs, watching Anya and Marie from the corners of her eyes and trying to fight off the bitterness rising within her mind. She could not remember an instance where she had hated the regulations of her duties more than now. She had never before questioned the unspoken rules in this sense, but she could no longer see the sense in not being allowed to have a family. She could understand that getting pregnant herself would be out of question, solely because it would put her and the unborn into even greater unpredictable danger once the potential pregnancy would influence her strength and ability to protect herself. But why could she not claim a red-blooded child as her own?

~ ~ ~

They continued three more days like that, covering only around half of the distance they theoretically could have per day, but leaving Marie with more time to rest as a consequence.

Lexa and Anya watched over the girl with increasing worry, Clarke had had to give their daughter a higher dose of her medication already after the second day and it had to have been increased daily now. It seemed that Marie’s exhaustion was finally winning out, the medication was still showing an effect but by the time they would halt around midday, it was clear that the blonde girl was already exhausted and she did not argue any longer about wanting to contribute in constructing their camp for the night.

They had switched the duties of which needed to be done to erect the camp and keep them stored with food and water among each other, leaving Marie mostly out of the loop.

They had just now stopped their journey on midday of the fourth day since leaving Polis and Marie had already gotten a glimpse of the ocean shimmering ahead of them on the horizon and it was obvious how exited the child was.

Gustus had led all of their horses over to a stream to let them drink with Clarke’s help and Anya was in the process of erecting the tents for Clarke and Gustus while Lexa worked on the bigger one for them to share.

Marie trudged behind Lexa with a frown on her features, since she had seen the glimmer of the ocean ahead, she had instantly felt wide awake again “Can’t we continue to the ocean now, Lexa?” she asked again, although she had done so before already and had been denied.

Lexa sighed under her breath, getting a little tired off the girl’s continued question “No, Marie, we will reach it tomorrow” she reassured the child in a calm but decisive tone.

“But I can see it already” Marie whined out with a pout, turning her head back into the direction where she now knew the ocean was located.

“It is still much farther ahead than you think, Marie” Lexa tried to reason with the girl, trying to keep a hold on her patience.

“But…” Marie spoke up again in a whiney tone, stepping closer to the commander, hoping to convince the woman otherwise still somehow.

“Marie, I said “no”” Lexa retorted with a little more force and turned her head to stare the girl down for a second. Her hold on the wooden post slipped slightly and when she quickly adjusted her grip again, she felt a splinter lodging itself into her hand and a grimace flashed over her features.

Marie backed off again at Lexa’s grimace and her grey eyes wandered to the commander’s hand, once she had let go of the wooden post. Her grey eyes widened a little when she noticed the seemingly large splinter lodged deeply within Lexa’s palm.

Lexa gritted her teeth for a second before she took careful hold of the splinter and pulled it out, wincing a little at the sensation and black blood immediately welled up from the small open wound. The splinter truly had been rather large and it had gone in deep.

Without further thought, Marie stepped even closer and quickly closed one of her hands around Lexa’s hand, healing the open wound in a second without any hesitation.

Lexa sighed under her breath “That has not been necessary, little star” she assessed and her green eyes flashed with worry, when she noticed that Marie was bleeding a little from her nose again “Come on and sit down” she ordered in a gentle tone, grasping onto one of the girl’s elbows and leading her over to a tree trunk to lean against.

“Can’t we go to the ocean now?” Marie tried once again and confusion flashed over her features when she noticed the taste of blood. Her features fell visibly when she realized that she was having another nosebleed.

“Tomorrow, little star” Lexa reassured the girl in a soft tone and forced her to sit down with gentle hands.

Anya had finished erecting the other two tents and her brown eyes worriedly took in the girl’s current state, feeling her stomach churn with uncertainty. The girl had continued to have nosebleeds unpredictably and Clarke had told them clearly that some part of the medications must be failing her already for the symptom to persist.

Thankfully Marie’s nosebleeds stopped rather quickly this time, but it left the girl feeling even more drained and tired.

Gustus and Clarke returned only a few moments later and the blonde healer immediately came over to investigate Marie’s condition.

It was Lexa’s and Anya’s duty right now to gather firewood and go to hunt for their meal. Clarke of course immediately agreed to keep watch over Marie, who seemed almost close to falling asleep already.

“Can’t I come?” Marie feebly argued with Anya, although her grey eyes were visibly tired.

Anya shook her head with a soft expression “Not right now, you can rest for now” she retorted and pressed a light kiss onto the girl’s forehead, keeping her from trying to get to her feet again.

Marie sighed with a slight pout, which only vanished when Lexa gave her a gentle goodbye-kiss as well.

Gustus offered to take over Anya’s duty to gather firewood, so that Lexa and Anya could just hunt together and should be quicker like that.

So, Clarke remained behind alone with Marie and busied herself with setting up a large pot in which they could cook later. She also began to chop up some of the last vegetable they had left to cook. She knew that they would reach their destination tomorrow, so their reserves would last exactly as long as they had needed.

Clarke only occasionally looked over at Marie for the next few minutes and the younger girl had not moved yet from her place sitting against the tree trunk and it seemed as if her grey eyes would be falling shut any second now.

When Gustus had not returned yet a few moments later, Clarke stood up again, leaving Marie in her place with the conviction that the girl would sleep soon any way, to gather some water from the stream. It was not far and she would return a few moments later.

~ ~ ~

Marie had watched Lexa and Anya leave with the rest of her pout still lingering on her features, she had wanted to accompany them to hunt after all. She was disappointed in herself mostly for losing strength so quickly now.

She felt the exhaustion pulling at the edges of her consciousness and she barely registered that Clarke had stood up and left, when twigs snapping loudly to her side woke her back up to some degree. Marie tilted her head to the side trying to listen for additional sounds. Had Gustus left in that direction? She was not entirely sure about where Lexa and Anya had left to either. Could they be needing her help? The thought forced Marie back to her feet and another snapping sound woke up her tired mind even further.

Marie followed the sounds for some time, barely noticing how far her steps had already carried her away from their small camp, tightening her grip around one of her daggers, aware that she could also be heading straight in the direction of a predator.

She hesitated for a moment, when she noticed who had actually caused the snapping sounds. Marie stood directly in front of a small meadow and an apparently old woman was dragging a wagon behind herself with obvious great struggle. She did not know if she should approach the woman or not, but it seemed as if she needed help.

Cautiously, one hand still resting on the handle of the dagger, Marie stepped closer, stopping just out of reach and she cleared her throat loudly to announce her presence “Do you need help?” she asked in perfect Trigedasleng.

The old woman turned to face her immediately and Marie noticed just how old she appeared to be. Her hair was all grey and she doubted that she had ever seen such a wrinkly face before.

“Don’t just stand there then, child” the woman retorted in a gruff tone, motioning to the wagon and swiping a sweaty strand of grey hair from her face.

Marie blinked for a moment, before she inclined her head and stepped closer. One of her hands brushed over the woman’s arm for a second, but she did not notice how the woman’s eyes widened noticeably.

“Are you alone here, child?” the woman questioned, tone noticeably softer now.

Marie shook her head in the negative and she motioned back over her shoulder towards their makeshift camp. She was not entirely sure if the woman was trustworthy or not, but something within her dark eyes told her that she was alright.

The woman scrutinized the blonde girl critically. She had felt this certain spark so long ago now, that she had almost forgotten how it felt and she had been utterly convinced to never meet someone again who possessed it either.

Marie closed her hands around the handles of the wagon, pulling at it with a huff, but she barely managed to move it an inch and frustration flashed over her features again.

“Do not bother, child, if you are not alone, someone else can surely help me” the woman interrupted the girl’s efforts, dark eyes taking in the signs of a recent nosebleed on the girl’s fair skin.

Marie frowned for a moment, but cautiously nodded her head. She did not know how Lexa and Anya might react if she brought a stranger back with her, but she guessed that she would find out about it soon.

~ ~ ~

Clarke returned to the camp only shortly later and she carried the pot with water back over to the middle of the camp. She nearly let it drop when her gaze travelled to the tree trunk, where Marie had been only moments ago and found it abandoned now.

She narrowed her eyes, looking around her vicinity quickly and feeling her heart rate increase. Clarke stepped over to the tents, looking into the biggest one in the hopes of finding Marie asleep in it and she felt her heart drop to her stomach when the tent was empty.

She had only been gone for a few moments, so where the hell could Marie had gone to? Could the girl have gone into the woods to relieve herself? Clarke hoped that this was the case and quickly left the tent again.

“Marie!” she called out the girl’s names loudly, trying to keep herself from panicking. The girl would surely not be foolish enough to leave on her own in the direction of the ocean or she at least hoped so. She had of course noticed Marie trying to persuade Lexa to cross the remaining distance to the ocean today still after all.

Clarke stopped for a moment, hoping to hear the younger girl’s soft tone calling back, but when the forest remained silent around her, she could not stop the panic from taking hold of her mind. Lexa and Anya would kill her single-handedly if something happened to Marie because the child had gotten lost under her watch. How could she have been stupid enough to leave her unsupervised at all?

 

Chapter 250

Gustus had still been in shouting distance to the camp and he frowned when he heard Clarke calling out for Marie loudly. When he heard her calling out a second time, voice distinctly taking on a panicked note, his frown turned into a grimace and he gathered his fire wood quickly, hurrying back towards the camp with fast strides.

He encountered Clarke only a few moments later and his ears had obviously been correct, the young woman was utterly panicked. “Where is she?” he ground out intently, unceremoniously letting all the wood he had gathered fall down in the middle of the camp.

“I don’t know” Clarke admitted in a huff, blue eyes still scanning around the forest fervently “I only left her for a moment to get water and she was nearly asleep. I had not wanted to wake her” she tried to justify her actions, feeling guilt settle in her mind.

Gustus sighed under his breath “It does not matter now, why she was alone. We need to find Marie, now”. It would help no one and certainly not Marie if he wasted time reproaching the blonde healer now, there would surely be time for it later after they had located the girl again. He wondered just how many times they would still need to search for the girl. He could not remember if Sierra had ever been gone this often as a child as well.

Clarke nodded, aware of the fact that Marie could easily have collapsed somewhere as well. It had happened before that the girl lost consciousness for some time after a nosebleed. She should have never let the girl out of her sight at all.

~ ~ ~

Lexa and Anya had just managed to shoot down a little deer, which must have been separated from its family, when the general heard a distinct shout.

Lexa turned around as well with a frown, wondering for a moment if someone might be attacking them.

A second later another shout resonated through the woods. They were too away right now to hear what was shouted, but Lexa could only assume that Gustus could have encountered unbidden guests.

Anya quickly bent down, hoisting the small deer over her shoulders. It was small enough to be carried by one person. She would have usually preferred to take the body apart now before returning, making it even lighter to carry, but she also worried why there were shouts at all.

Lexa seemed to agree that they should better return as soon as possible and they hurried back towards their makeshift camp together.

Once they got close enough to decipher the shouts, which kept on repeating regularly, Lexa felt her heart drop momentarily. Gustus and Clarke were alternatively calling out to Marie, which could logically only mean that the child was missing currently.

Lexa’s lips thinned slightly while her mind fervently tried to come up with a scenario as to how the girl had gone missing at all.

Irritation flashed through Anya’s brown eyes “If she left towards the ocean on her own, I am going to wring her neck single-handedly” she ground out in rising anger.

Lexa narrowed her eyes at the older woman. She knew that the general would of course not make her threat come true, but she also hoped that Marie had not been foolish and thick-headed enough to disobey her in such a fashion.

They would surely find out soon enough what could have prompted Marie to leave the camp alone.

~ ~ ~

Marie hesitated for a moment, before she truly let go of the wagon “Maybe if we pull it together…” she mused thoughtfully, looking at it again. It did not appear awfully big or heavy, but the uneven ground made it harder to pull it further.

The old woman shook her head “Do not bother, child, you do not seem well” she assessed, taking in the girl’s complexion truly now. The child was thin, visibly pale – too pale for this season – and bruises of various healing stages seemed to litter every inch of her visible skin, while dark circles of exhaustion resided under her grey eyes.

Marie nodded again with a frown and she self-consciously pulled at her coat, pulling it closer around her body and trying to cover more of herself with it.

“How far away are your people then?” the woman asked, looking around and not being able to spot any one. If her assumption was correct, leaving the girl alone was extremely foolish. She had seen this before, in her own daughter after all. She wondered absentmindedly how she could question this girl after the power which she was sure she possessed.

“Ehm…” Marie hesitated, looking back in the direction from which she had come “…not too far” she settled on uncertainly, although she could not clearly remember how long it had taken her to reach this point.

The woman’s dark eyes widened when the girl turned and she could see her neck, revealing the sign of the commander tattooed into her skin. She had only heard rumours of the Sky people so far, but a part of them had always been that one child of the Sky people had been appointed as a second to the commander. “Lead ahead then, child” she suggested with the hint of a smile on her lips.

Marie nodded again, motioning back over. She hesitated for a moment when she noticed that the old woman seemed to have difficulties to walk straight without the wagon steadying her posture. Without much further thought, she stepped closer and offered her a hand. For a second, she wondered if her talent could somehow help her, moving seemed to cause her constant pain.

The woman’s dark eyes widened even further when she felt the spark again at the child’s touch, she immediately severed it, when she noticed a trickle of blood running from her nose. She shook her head quickly “Do not try to heal me, child” she said. She knew now, that she was correct in her assumption, this girl did possess the same talent her own child had once possessed.

Marie blinked in confusion, grey eyes widened in clear disbelief and her mouth hung open slightly. She felt dark blotches appear in her field of vision and she swayed slightly on her feet, reaching out back to the wagon to steady herself against the sudden dizziness. “How do you know that?” she finally breathed out as suspicion filtered into her mind.

“That is not important now, child” the old woman shook her head slightly “You need to rest and not to use your powers any longer for now”.

Marie frowned in confusion. Lexa and Anya had both been convinced that no one knew of such powers and Titus had not found any references as well, so how could this woman now know something?

“How long have you been like this now, child?” the old woman questioned, dark eyes worried.

Marie titled her head to the side slightly, eyes narrowed at the woman’s offered hands suspiciously for a moment, before she finally grasped onto them and they slowly began to make their way into the direction she had previously indicated. “I am dying…” she admitted flatly after a rather long moment of silence. The woman had continued to stare at her in silence.

“Dying?” the woman echoed with a frown.

Marie nodded her head sadly “My mom died of leukaemia before, now I have it” she reasoned, tone hinted with bitterness “I have not even seen the ocean yet” she added after another second. Each step felt immensely exhausting right now and she did not know if her strength would last her to their makeshift camp, she could almost feel it draining now.

The woman kept silent for long moments, mulling the girl’s words over in her head and before she could actually make a response, they could hear shouts ahead of them. “It seems that your people are looking for you, child” she commented in a soft tone, reassured a little that the girl had in fact not been running through the woods on her own.

Marie nodded with a tired expression, not hiding the worry and guilt which flickered through her grey eyes. She had obviously once again worried Lexa and Anya by disappearing, after she had promised them to never do so again.

~ ~ ~

Lexa felt the anger bubble close to the surface. They had encountered Clarke and Gustus not too far from their makeshift camp and Clarke had freely admitted that it had been her own shortcoming of leaving the girl alone, if only for a few moments, that had led to her disappearance once again.

Anya had been just as angry at the blonde healer as the commander was, but they both knew that finding Marie again had to have the highest priority for the moment.

So, they separated again, each of them leaving in another direction, hoping to quicken the time of finding the girl like this.

“Marie!” Lexa shouted loudly for what felt like the hundredth time and her anger at Clarke was slowly replaced by the encompassing fear that they might not find Marie alive this time. Her mind was very creative right now and she pictured various scenarios of how the girl could have found her death alone in the woods. She doubted that she would forgive herself for leaving their daughter alone and not having been there to say her final goodbyes.

She hesitated for a brief moment, when her ears picked up on other sounds than the normal sounds of animals roaming through the forest around herself.

“Marie!” she called out again loudly and listened for an answer with a frown, holding her breath in anticipation.

Lexa felt her heart give a jolt, when she heard a faint answer to her call coming from directly ahead of her and she quickened her steps in the direction. She barely wasted any thought to the idea that she could very well be walking directly into a trap.

She felt relief course through her mind, when she broke through the tree line and her eyes fell onto Marie walking slowly next to an old woman. Lexa’s eyes narrowed dangerously at the old woman, wondering for a moment if the woman might have done something to Marie.

Her slight suspicion was forgotten immediately, when Marie looked up and a mixture of relief at seeing her, guilt and apology flashed through the child’s grey eyes. Lexa felt her breath shudder for a second when she noticed the blood still trickling softly from Marie’s nose.

Lexa hurried over to Marie and old woman and the girl immediately let go of the stranger, swaying on her feet visibly. She reached out quickly, steadying the girl and without further thought, she picked Marie up, feeling the child wrap her legs around her waste and her head almost fell against her collarbone.

“I am sorry…” Marie slurred out with obvious great difficulty, trying to apologize for having gotten lost once again.

“Hush, little star” Lexa tried to sooth the girl, she knew how stubbornly Marie could fight against her exhaustion if the girl was upset “You are safe now, I have got you” and she tightened her arms around the girl, intent on carrying her back to their makeshift camp, it was not that far away after all.

Marie immediately let her eyes fall shut now, letting the exhaustion pull her under and into oblivion.

Lexa’s green eyes hardened immediately when they fell back onto the old woman “Who are you?” she questioned in a strict tone.

“Apologies, commander” the older woman inclined her head – she had recognized the younger woman immediately “I am Hera” she introduced herself.

“From which clan are you?” Lexa asked, she had failed to recognize a definite origin of the clothing the woman was wearing.

“I was from Sankru once” the woman answered honestly “but I live with the boat people now”.

Lexa inclined her head, the boat people were known for their peaceful nature and had taken on quiet a lot of people from other clans who had not fit in any longer, tired of the constant wars, offering a peaceful sanctuary instead.

“Do not be too angry with her” Hera added in an honest tone “She had only wanted to help”. A slight smile flitted over her features; her own daughter had possessed this personality trait as well.

Lexa’s eyes narrowed slightly, but she knew that there was really no sense in punishing the girl harshly now. It worried her far more that her health seemed to have decreased so rapidly again, Marie had not dropped from exhaustion again since Clarke had given her the first dose of this medication.

~ ~ ~

“Oh, thank god” Clarke breathed out when she noticed Lexa return with Marie in her arms, she only fleetingly wondered who the woman was in their company “Is she asleep or unconscious?” she immediately questioned, stepping closer to Lexa and trying to cower under her momentarily burning gaze.

“Asleep” Lexa answered easily, softly prying Marie’s arms and legs from her own person and manoeuvring the child to sit back against the tree trunk.

Clarke nodded again “I will prepare another dose” she offered and hurried back to her own supplies.

Hera watched the proceedings with a frown, but she did not interfere.

Marie’s grey eyes were tired when Clarke returned to her side and she did not fight at all when the older girl turned one of her arms, searching for a vein quickly and injecting the medicine directly into her bloodstream, where it could take a faster effect than having to pass through her stomach.

Marie frowned when she noticed how angry Lexa seemed to be and she cowered a little in guilt until she noticed that the commander’s anger was not actually aimed at herself but at Clarke. “Don’t fight…” she intervened the beginning argument with pleading eyes, trying to apologise once again that she had disappeared at all.

Clarke huffed under her breath, although she was truly astounded by the fact that Marie had interfered at all and even more so that Lexa had completely deflated and simply sat down next to the girl, letting her cuddle up to her. “I will go and search for Anya and Gustus to tell them that Marie is found” she offered finally; she knew her presence was not wanted by the commander at the moment.

Marie closed her eyes for a moment, waiting for the medication now being pumped through her blood stream to take effect.

Hera watched the proceedings with a deepening frown, she had no idea what the blonde woman had just done and her eyes widened a little when she barely caught the sudden glow of the child’s hands, before it vanished again.

Lexa felt her own reserves being replenished once again, feeling a few scratches heal over as well and she sighed under her breath. She glanced at the older woman, but she was glancing into another direction right now. So, she softly let her fingers card through Marie’s blonde hair, feeling her nerves settle again after the scare.

Marie opened her eyes again a few moments later, feeling her strength return with each new inhale. This way of administration truly seemed to be more potent. “I am feeling better already” she proclaimed in satisfaction “We can continue to the ocean still” she added hopefully.

Lexa’s lips ghosted into a smile and amusement glinted within her green eyes as she once again denied the child “You will see it tomorrow” she promised in a soft tone.

Gustus’ and Anya’s return disturbed the rather peaceful atmosphere between the two and Marie looked rather small as she glanced up at the clearly incensed general offering another apology.

Anya’s anger seemed to melt just as quickly though at hearing that Marie had obviously been weakened even further.

Gustus accompanied Hera back towards her wagon, offering to pull it further for the old woman.

Clarke mutely busied herself with preparing their food. She was nowhere near good at it yet than any grounder, but it would be edible.

Marie sensed how Lexa and Anya still appeared tense, both not saying a word to Clarke at all. In an attempt to somehow lift the mood, she recalled vividly out loud to them how she had perceived being chased by the angry pauna with Lexa and Clarke.

She seemed to have been successful as well, as all three of them appeared visibly calmer again.

“Only you could turn nearly being killed by one of our most dangerous predators into a funny episode” Anya remarked with a mixture of disbelief and amusement tinting her tone.

Marie laughed lightly – being fully awake again – but her expression turned a little more serious again “I don’t think life on earth is only hard” she assessed “It can be so much fun”.

Lexa snorted slightly under her breath and she wondered if she had ever thought like this before, but she could honestly not remember.

“I had never imagined to find this kind of life here” Marie said, voice tinted with melancholia “finding a family again…” she added in a strangled tone, looking between the two women with wide expressive grey eyes “…thank you so much for loving me…”.

~ ~ ~

“Can we play tag?” Marie suddenly asked with a hopeful smile on her features. They had just finished their meal and she was wide awake again.

“Tag?” it was actually Clarke who echoed the word with a frown, while Lexa and Anya seemed a little clueless for what Marie was asking at all.

“What is “tag”?” Lexa questioned with a slight frown.

“It is a children’s game” Clarke offered trying to explain the rules of the game.

The more Clarke explained the more likely Anya and Lexa seemed to wish to decline the girl’s wish.

“We played it in school” Marie explained with a brighter smile “I played it wit Maura and the others often” she added and her smile faded noticeably “I miss her…”.

Lexa and Anya bandied a look, nodding at the same time, standing up and offering a hand to the girl to pull her from the ground.

“Alright, little star” Lexa proclaimed with a slightly unsure smile “Let us play then”.

Gustus watched the proceedings with a smile, while Clarke had entered into the game as well.

The girl’s bright childish laughter soon resonated loudly around them and Gustus felt his own lips tilt upwards into a smile. Even through everything she had been forced through, Marie had somehow still retained some part of this childish joy and naivete which made the girl so special. He had been deeply thankful for the girl’s presence following the weeks after Sierra’s execution, he had grieved for his own daughter, but this blonde girl had somehow still managed to pull a smile out of him.

Marie laughed shrilly when Lexa caught her and the commander swept her from her feet and into her arms, whirling her around once, before setting her to her feet again.

“Enough?” Anya asked with a smile, stepping closer again.

Marie’s lips pulled into a slight pout “No!” she exclaimed loudly, using Anya’s inattentiveness she reached out and touched her, before jumping back with a squeal “Your turn!”

~ ~ ~

They kept on playing until Marie visibly was out of breath, but also smiling the brightest than she had in a long time.

“The dose will wear off soon” Clarke cautioned, observing the younger girl carefully.

Marie sighed under her breath, while she noticed Lexa tensing next to her “You should talk with each other and reconcile, I am sorry that I got lost again, but you should not be angry with each other. You should be there for each other…” The “…because I will soon not be there any longer” might have remained unsaid, but was still clear.

Lexa sighed under her breath, lips thinning slightly, but she inclined her head. Maybe Marie was correct and she needed to talk things out with Clarke once and for all. She motioned the blonde woman away from the camp and into the tree line, not wanting Marie to overhear their conversation and not really looking forward to having to hold this conversation at all.

 

 

 

 

 

 

Chapter 26: Chapter 251 - 260

Chapter Text

Chapter 251

Back in Polis Ontari was slowly getting used to the changed schedule which now determined her day. She had not been aware of just how different her daily routine had been in comparison to the other novitiates. Sleeping with them in the larger dormitory was certainly weird as well.

The three younger nightblood children were all still visibly weary of her and it only seemed to have decreased the slightest bit, when Risha had decided on the second day that staying alone in the commander’s quarters was not to the animal’s liking at all.

Ontari did not know for sure just how the wolf had found its way through the tower or why the guards had let it into the nightblood’s dormitory, but she was startled aware on the second night by the wolf jumping onto the foot of her bed and rolling itself together there.

Now the wolf kept mostly to her side and no matter how often Ontari had tried to shoo it from her side, it stayed stubbornly and she had slowly resigned herself to the fact that Risha would stay close to her until Marie returned to the capitol again.

She was certainly glad that she had formed at least a lose connection to Aden during their outing, staying with the other nightbloods was the slightest bit less awkward with the blonde boy there. But she dearly missed Marie, being together with the younger girl was so easy that her own social shortcomings were barely noticeable in her presence, but it was different with the other novitiates.

June and Aden both seemed to take great care of the younger children as well, soothing them when they were upset about something and the longer, she stayed with them, the better she understood why the commander had used the term “nightblood brothers and sisters” to speak about her own generation of novitiates. Ontari was not sure if she truly wanted to change her apparent position as an outcast among them, convinced that Lexa and Anya would bring Marie back to the capitol, refusing to believe otherwise.

“When will the commander return?” Ontari was pulled out of her thoughts, having sat on her bed, fingers absentmindedly carding through Risha’s fur, by Aden’s voice. She looked up and saw the nightblood boy enter the dormitory with Titus at this side. She knew that Aden received private tutelage from the flamekeeper.

Ontari strained her ears, wanting to her the answer as well. Anya had been strangely vague in her answer to this specific question.

Titus visibly sighed under his breath and his dark eyes for once did not shine with annoyance “At an unspecified time” he answered in a heavy tone.

“Unspecified?” Aden echoed with a frown. They had not been told what was going on but the commander’s departure from the capitol had been rather abrupt after the end of the war against Azgeda.

Titus sighed again and he seemed to contemplate something internally as he looked around the room and noticed that all of the novitiates seemed to be paying his words attention at the moment.

Ontari frowned when the bald man’s gaze visibly lingered on her own person for long moments, before he seemed to straighten.

“You may very well hear it from me now” Titus proclaimed, looking at all of them once again and waited for the nightblood children to drop the pretence of not listening to his words “I know that all of you have taken a great liking to Marie” he began to explain – Boo in particular smiled broadly at that – he sighed again “but the commander will not return to the capitol with Marie again”.

“What?” Aden echoed with confusion clouding his blue eyes. He could not fathom why Lexa would reject her second, the girl had done nothing to his knowledge to prompt being exiled after all.

“Marie is ill” Titus explained the hard truth in blunter words now “Lexa and Anya will take her to the ocean to die there”.

Silence settled heavily into the room and Ontari’s instinctual reaction was to shake her head in the negative as she felt anger course through her mind.

“No!” she exclaimed loudly, dark eyes hard as she stood from the bed, facing off with the flamekeeper “That’s a lie” she claimed forcefully.

Titus’ expression flickered with compassion for a second before it got harder again “You will not disrespect me like that, so, mind your place” he warned the nightblood girl in a calm tone.

“It can’t be right…” Ontari exclaimed again, shaking her head, but Titus’ expression had not shown even the hint of a lie and she could not come up with a reason as to why the flamekeeper would come up with something like that. She had felt already that Lexa and Anya would not have lied to her about it, but still, she had refused to believe it. “I have not even said my goodbyes to her…” she added, expression crestfallen and tears gathering in her dark eyes, which she utterly refused to let fall.

Titus looked at the girl with compassion, squeezing her shoulder once. He had been slightly taken by surprise by Marie approaching him on her last day in the capitol. The girl had wanted to say goodbye, apologizing once again for the prank she had pulled on him with the other nightblood children, claiming once again that she had “just wanted to make you laugh” in her soft tone. He might not have grown really close to the blonde child from the Sky, but even he had to acknowledge her unique sweet soul now.

~ ~ ~

Lexa led Clarke ahead into the treeline, trying to sort through her thoughts quickly. In all honesty, she had not planned to speak with Clarke like that again yet.

Clarke followed the commander with her nerves fluttering. She had imagined this occasion often enough, that she felt lost for words now.

Lexa stopped in her tracks when she knew that they were out of hearing distance from their makeshift camp and turned around on her heels, facing Clarke with a slightly expectant expression.

Clarke breathed out a slightly shaky breath, trying to gather her bearings and remember at least parts of all that she had envisioned of saying to Lexa when the opportunity came up. “I am sorry…” she began, feeling herself fumble for words, under the weight of Lexa’s green-eyed piercing stare.

Lexa tilted her head the slightest bit to the side, indicating that she was listening intently and waiting. She did not feel as if she had to apologize to the blonde woman. She had made her previous decision solely based on Marie’s well-being and she had outright told Clarke so as well. The decision might have been harsh to both of them, but she had to think of her daughter more than of herself. It warmed her heart slightly that Marie wished for her to reconcile with Clarke.

“I know that I had not right to drag Marie into our fight” Clarke continued after a moment and her blue eyes held her honesty clearly for Lexa to see “I know that I also had no right to question your decision as the commander in such a fashion, but I was so angry… I had just wanted to save him…” she stopped in her words, when she noticed that she being carried away and felt the residual anger of this afternoon simmer in her veins.

Lexa inclined her head, expression mostly blank “I am aware” she acknowledged. She did not really have the intention of getting into yet another argument with the blonde healer, they would get nowhere like this, their opinions were still too contradicting for that to go over peacefully in so many aspects. Still her own residual anger at the original argument was slightly rekindled by the fact that Marie had gotten lost under Clarke’s watch just a few hours ago. But she did not truly have the energy at the moment to muster much anger for the blonde healer, her attention was with Marie. She highly doubted that talking would truly get them anywhere right now. She knew that all relationships sooner or later were filled with arguments and to her now it was rather a question if they could find a way to keep up a peaceful relationship even through having arguments. Clarke was slightly hot-headed by nature and she truly did not know if she had the power to keep on arguing with her lover at every other instance as well as to keeping the clans in line.

Lexa sighed under her breath, green eyes searching through Clarke’s blue ones for a long silent moment, before she leaned over and simply closed the distance between them, once again reconnecting their lips with each other in a soft kiss. She had made the decision to end this relationship with Clarke mostly with her head and maybe it was her heart which needed to decide now.

She lingered at the gentle press of lips for a few seconds, wondering internally why the familiar feeling of coming home and feeling safe was just not blooming within her chest now. She could sadly not say that she was feeling anything deep in particular and she pulled back with a frown, brows knitted together in both confusion and frustration likewise. Something had changed, she could not put a finger on it right now, but something had changed irrevocably between them and it simply did not feel the same any longer.

Clarke’s blue eyes swam with emotions when Lexa pulled back and she noticed the brunette’s expression. In her mind this whole moment should have played out differently and she could not identify just where it had gone wrong. The slightly sad acceptance within Lexa’s green eyes was obvious though and Clarke knew that she had lost the brunette possibly forever now.

Before she could say anything though, they suddenly heard a loud shout “Marie!”. The voice had unmistakably belonged to Anya and it had sounded panicked.

Lexa’s eyes widened a fraction before she stormed passed Clarke back into the direction of their makeshift camp, feeling her heart beating frantically within her chest, expecting the worse already.

~ ~ ~

“I forgot something where the wagon was” Hera proclaimed a moment after the commander and the blonde woman had vanished out of sight, looking at the burly man expectantly.

Gustus inclined his head in acknowledgement, standing back up again and motioning the older woman ahead of himself. He was slightly irritated that the woman had not said so already when they had actually been there, but that was obviously not to be helped now.

Marie watched them leave from the corner of her eyes, sitting beside Anya at the fire. She felt the muscles in her whole body burn painfully from the exertion and her breathing was still slightly elated. She was not sure, but it felt as if her heart was beating faster still as well and it felt weird, almost as if it was contracting her whole chest with its force, sending a persistent pain through her upper body with every single beat.

Although the bump on her head had lost most of its swelling by now, Marie felt yet another headache building below her temples and she rubbed at them tiredly.

Anya glanced over the girl with worried brown eyes. To her it seemed as if the child appeared the slightest bit more drawn and her breathing had a rattling quality to it. Now that she looked closer at Marie, she could make out a fine sheen of sweat glistening on her pale skin and she tightened an arm around the girl’s smaller body, when she felt Marie shivering lightly leaning against her side.

“Do you want to lie down?” Anya addressed the girl in a soft tone, feeling her heart weigh heavily with the realization of how quickly the medication seemed to be failing Marie. Lexa and she had hoped to maybe even get a few peaceful weeks with Marie and not just a few mere days, but if her constitution continued to decrease this fast, Anya doubted that this would come true.

Marie hummed lightly under her breath, feeling too tired already to even open her mouth and force her tongue to form a verbal answer.

Anya’s slight worry turned into a frown and she stood up, keeping Marie steady with one hand and helping her up a second later, steadying her again when the girl visibly swayed on her feet.

“I am not feeling so good, Mama” Marie ground out after a moment, looking up at Anya with slightly hooded grey eyes. It seemed as if the world was spinning around her and every new breath suddenly felt too laborious.

Anya’s frown deepened and she slightly let go of the girl “I will get you some water” she offered, hoping that letting her drink something would revive the girl at least a little.

Her heart stopped in its beating for a second, when she turned back around and Marie stood in front of her, suddenly deathly pale, blood ran from her nose again and the girl coughed once, coughing up an alarming amount of blood.

“Help me…” the girl whispered in a horrified tone, grey eyes wide with absolute horror, before her legs seemed to give way under her and she began to fall to the ground.

Anya immediately let go of the cup filled with water, letting it drop without further thought and rushed over to her daughter, exclaiming her name loudly and catching the girl before she could fully fall to the ground.

The girl’s eyes were still open and her breathing was definitely rattling now and blood still bubbled slightly from her lips. Marie tried to speak, opening and closing her mouth with an expression of pure fright on her features, but no sound passed over her lips any longer.

“Sssh, little star” Anya tried to shush the girl, stopping her from trying to speak. Her own heart was beating frantically within her chest, feeling utterly helpless and useless at seeing the girl so clearly suffering and being unable to do something for her. Where the hell was Clarke?

“Don’t speak” Anya tried to sooth the girl, bringing her body closer to her own chest, kneeling down into the grass with the girl “You will be alright…” she kept on repeating, trying to reassure herself just as much as the clearly frightened child, while she already felt tears burn in her eyes. Something told her, that Marie would not survive this and she just knew that the girl was in the process of dying this very moment.

Her brown eyes snapped up from Marie’s face only for a second, when she heard Lexa return to the makeshift camp, breaking through the treeline to their left.

~ ~ ~

Lexa faltered within her step for a second and her eyes widened at the scene right in front of her. It was obvious on the first glance that Marie’s health condition must have decreased tremendously just now and she felt her heart clench painfully, looking back over her shoulder at Clarke. The blonde healer had followed hotly on her heels and the deep sadness within her blue eyes and the subtle shake of her head, felt like the worse hit, Lexa had ever suffered.

Lexa felt torn between demanding Clarke to do something, anything really which would save Marie now and accepting that there was nothing left for the healer to do. They had known before leaving Polis that Marie would not be surviving this journey, but they had not even reached their destination yet and Lexa felt almost betrayed, robbed of precious time with their daughter by fate. They had both been convinced that they would still have more time with Marie.

Lexa quickly stepped closer to Marie, kneeling down beside Anya, so that she kneeled behind Marie’s head. Her hands shook noticeably, when she reached out and gently framed the girl’s face with them, caressing over the soft skin of the child’s features softly.

Marie’s grey eyes had flashed with recognition when Lexa had appeared in her periphery – her vision was already beginning to swim at the edges – and she still tried to say something. Tell them how much she loved them, tell them how grateful she was, tell them that she did not wish to die, tell them that she wanted to stay. But all which passed through her lips were pitiful gurgling sounds, as blood clogged her throat, making it physically impossible for her to speak any longer and tears of bitter frustration fell from her eyes at being unable to voice all which she still had to say.

“Sssh…” Lexa tried to sooth the girl in an audibly shaky tone, lower lip trembling already, as the first tear rolled down her own cheek “We are here, little star, you are safe”. She kept on whispering non-sense reassurances to the girl and her tears fell onto the girl’s cheeks, mixing with her own and after a moment, Lexa noticed that Anya was already crying as well, clutching Marie’s body just the slightest bit harder to her chest.

The fight raging through Marie’s grey eyes was easy to spot and Lexa continued to caress the girl’s cheeks for long moments “You can let go, little star” she breathed out, deeply pained and feeling her own heart once again being ripped to pieces within her chest.

Anya felt strangled by the grief already coursing through her veins and she kept on muttering under her breath, how much the girl was loved. She did not know if Marie was even still able to hear them clearly, nor would the exact words probably matter. She just waited for the girl’s body to stop shivering and to fall motionless within her arms, indicating that she had lost her fight and her sufferings had ended finally.

When the moment finally came and Marie stopped blinking, it took only a second longer for the gurgling sound to fade as well and Anya let out a deeply pained sound of raw pain, more animalistic than human and she tightened her arms even further around Marie’s limp body.

Lexa’s hands remained extended in the air for long moments, even after Anya had removed the girl from her touch and the way her palms and fingers tingled at the loss of contact, swept through her whole body like a tsunami. For a second, she felt numb as her mind tried to process frantically what had just happened and then with the blink of an eye the strange numbness was replaced with a whirlwind of emotions. Encompassing grief at losing their daughter for real, deep loss at all the moments they would never have now, crippling pain at yet another bereavement of a loved one, hot anger at fate for tearing the child away from them now and an almost blinding sense of paralysis as her mind was close to shutting down at the powerful influx of all at once.

“No, no, no” Anya kept on muttering with tears streaming down her cheeks, while her brown eyes were wide and unseeing, rocking the girl’s limp body in her arms nonstop “You need to wake up, little star” she pleaded senselessly with the child, placing her chin on the crown of her head.

Clarke had remained behind and she only realized now, that she was crying as well. She had not expected for Marie’s body to give out on her this quickly, but she knew that vomiting of blood always pointed to internal damaged and by thus the end of the acute phase of the disease and something which could not be treated any longer. She felt the raw grief being emitted from Lexa and Anya almost like physical waves and she remained rooted to her spot, unable to move and knowing in the depths of her heart that there was absolutely nothing she could do or say right now to alleviate even a sliver of the women’s pain. She knew that it was said that the loss of a child was the greatest pain a parent could suffer and although she never had any children of her own, Lexa’s and Anya’s apparent grief was proof enough of that.

They had all known of course that Marie would be dying soon, but Clarke was shocked nevertheless now and she had absolutely no idea what would be happening now. She had not realized that she had spoken her thoughts out aloud, until Lexa answered her.

“We will bring her body to Polis” Lexa proclaimed in a hollow voice. She had lowered her hands again, hugging her arms around herself in a futile attempt to hold herself together, while her green eyes were still fixed on Anya rocking Marie’s lifeless body in her arms. Another tear rolled down her cheek as guilt and bitter regret settled within her mind “She still has not seen the ocean…”.

 

 

Chapter 252

Hera's thoughts were circling wildly through her head as she slowly made her way through the dense woods with the commander’s personal guard. She wondered just how the blonde child had come to be with the two Trikru women. She had recognized immediately just what was wrong with the child to begin with, having seen it within her own daughter so many years ago. If she had known back then, what she knew now, she would have done so many things differently.

She knew that this girl was not her daughter by any means, but this talent was so rare and pure that it just needed to be protected. She assumed the commander to have selfish reasons for keeping the child around. It was only logical after all, a commander protected by someone with this kind of talent would last so much longer than any other could.

It did not seem as if the people surrounding the child truly understood anything about this talent, they would not have let her continue to use it so nonchalantly otherwise.

Her first assumption of the girl being kept around here of purely having to do with her talent, had already been proven wrong. The two Trikru women seemed to genuinely care for the child. But this confused her only more deeply. Could they not see that they were killing the child? If she would have the chance again with her daughter, she would keep her hidden from the world, making sure no one ever knew.

A plan had formed within her mind, the girl needed to be removed from them and she would make sure of that. By the girl’s rapidly declining strength, she knew that it would be time soon. So, she had led the guard away. The child seemed as pure and lovely as her own daughter had and she wondered if this talent was only born into the purest of souls.

When they returned to the camp some time later, she faltered in her plan to try and take the girl away, hiding her from the world.

The grief was almost palpable within the air surrounding the two Trikru women and she wondered if she would even get the chance to steal the child away at all. Maybe she had been wrong and the two did not really care for the girl’s talent at all but solely about her as a person instead.

She had heard much about the commander already, of course, as word travelled through the clans of the Trikru commander who had not only managed to unite the clans under one banner, but had also seen the Mountain fall and finally brought the Ice queen to her knees, ending her reign. Hera had not expected the commander to be like this, the young brunette woman was sitting on the grass, looking forlorn and broken, hugging herself tightly, while the general kept the child’s body close.

Hera decision to wait for a chance to take the girl away, became null, when she heard the commander’s regretful tone about not having shown the child the ocean yet.

“She will wake up again” Hera bluntly said, trying to stand up a little straighter, as straight as her bent back allowed.

While the general did not seem to have heard her words, the other three all looked at her now, varying expression of disbelief on their features.

Lexa stood up abruptly, striding towards the old woman with a wild look burning within her green eyes. She could not understand right now why this woman would wish to torture them like that, giving them false hope. Marie was dead, she could not wake again, although she may wish for nothing else in the world.

“She is dead…” Lexa ground out through clenched teeth, trying to keep her voice steady, but failing miserably at it, even she could noticeably hear its quiver and she could not seem to stop the tears from leaking from her eyes just yet, while her heart felt as if it had been torn to shreds within her chest.

Hera shook her head “She is now” she retorted, trying not to falter under the commander’s intense stare. It was all too easy to recognize the utter disbelief giving way to all encompassing hope within her green eyes for a moment.

“What is that supposed to mean?” Lexa questioned, voice getting harder as she tried to reign in her emotions. She tried with all her might not listen to the old woman’s words, she did not know the reasons for this torture, but she could already feel a part of her latching onto it in utter desperation, ready to believe just anything which would make Marie open her eyes again.

“I know that she will wake” Hera proclaimed confidently. She had seen the same happen with her daughter before “I know, because I have seen it already”.

Lexa’s brows furrowed in doubt “You claim to be a seer?”. Her thoughts were running wild within her mind. The existence of Marie’s talent alone was proof enough that there might be real seers, but she had never encountered anyone so far.

Hera shook her head in the negative “My daughter was born with the same talent” she finally admitted. She could not be sure if the commander would even believe within her claim.

Lexa’s eyes widened the slightest bit “How do you know about this?” she questioned sharply. Could someone has found out? Had someone betrayed her? Could it be possible that Marie had been poisoned in some way?

“I felt it immediately” was all Hera offered, meeting the commander’s fiery gaze as unfazed as possible “She will wake again” she repeated a little louder this time.

~ ~ ~

Anya had barely noticed anything going around her against the blinding anguish coursing through her mind.

The old woman’s last words were the first to truly register within her mind and while clutching Marie’s limp body to her chest, Anya stood up again as well, coming to stand beside Lexa and looking at the old woman with tormented eyes “What is it that you wish to accomplish by giving us this false hope?” she finally forced the words past her mouth.

Hera shook her head “Just wait, she will wake” she retorted with a slight shake of her head. She had hoped to ease their suffering, but it was clear that they did not believe her just yet. They would have to wait for the girl to wake up first. She knew that it should not take too long for the girl’s talent to restore some of her reserves, so that she could wake again.

Clarke hesitantly had stepped closer, while Gustus expression was a weird mixture of grief, disbelief and anger.

Lexa turned slightly to face the blonde healer and her words carried an undertone of definite hope and longing “Could she wake? Medically?”

Clarke’s expression clearly showed her doubt, she had seen the girl’s chest ceasing to move as her breathing stopped. But she could also remember quiet clearly now how Marie had somehow begun to breathe again within the medical bay after her aneurysm as well. “From a purely logical point of view, it should be impossible” she cautiously answered and she felt her heart give a slightly painful squeeze at the clearly crushed expression settling on Lexa’s features “But she has beaten death against all logic before” she added with shining blue eyes. She remembered that Marie’s scans had not even shown any kind of scar tissue within her brain after her miraculous recovery back then.

“She could wake…” Anya breathed out in what appeared to be utter bliss, sinking to her knees again with Marie and adjusting the girl’s lifeless body in a way that the girl was lying in her lap. She gently brushed a strand of Marie’s blonde hair from her face, keeping her eyes fixed on the girl’s face, hoping to detect even the slightest frown or flutter of her eyelids.

Lexa’s lips thinned. She did not know any longer what to think and she felt overwhelmed by it all. She did not wish to believe into the old woman’s words now only to be proven wrong later. Her mind was trying to process the fact that they had lost their daughter, hearing now that this might not be the case at all, was nearly overwhelming her senses.

Her eyes followed Hera’s every move, as the old woman turned slightly and sat down by the fire, keeping her distance from Anya and Marie, gaze fixed into the flames.

What reasons could the old woman have to lie to them in such a fashion? What use could it have to her? Lexa failed to figure out an answer, no matter how hard she thought about it.

The woman claimed to have seen this kind of talent before. Could this be true? She had never heard of anything similar to Marie’s talent before and Titus’ research had also revealed nothing.

She had so many questions running through her mind, that she was unable to truly focus on a single one. Lexa likewise wanted to believe in the woman’s words and could not at the same time. The most burning question though was – if she were to believe the woman’s insane claim – how long would it take for Marie to wake again? Minutes? Hours? Days? Weeks maybe even?

Reluctantly, Lexa sat down at the fire as well, close enough to Anya, to be able to reach out and touch Marie, if she so wanted. She would have preferred to actually do something physical, every second ticking by felt like an almost entire eternity in its own right and it was only disrupted by the occasional crackling sound coming from the wood burning in the fire and her own thoughts refusing to quiet down.

When the silence was becoming unbearable to Lexa and she had already lost her internal battle between her rational mind and the wish to just latch onto even the most delusory sliver of hope, she turned her head towards the older woman again “If you say to have seen this already, how long takes it for her to wake?” she finally formulated the question.

Hera’s gaze turned from the dancing flame to the commander and she chose her answer carefully “I cannot say if it will be the same for her, then it was for my daughter. Jude woke again before the pyre had been built”.

Lexa frowned slightly; this was surely no definition of time.

“So, this talent makes the one having it immortal?” Clarke spoke up hesitantly, blue eyes shining with the desire to understand this weird power, which so defied anything she had ever been taught.

Hera shook her head and a bout of sadness washed over her features “No, it does not mean true immortality”.

For a moment she could see her Jude die again; she had lived as a nomad with her family, like most of Sankru did in the desert zone but they had ventured too close to Ice Nation borders and had run into a group of Azgeda warriors. She had been behind with Jude, while her husband and the two sons had preceded them. They had already heard the screaming, before they saw them. She had not reacted quick enough to pull Jude away for them to hide together, before her daughter had already run ahead, probably in an attempt to safe her brothers and father. The Ice Nation warriors had beheaded her before she could have touched them though. For some reason, they had not seen her and Hera had backed away, pressing her baby boy to her chest, the only one who had survived. She had hoped for some time that Jude’s talent would have been able to revive her and she had even returned to the place later, trying to piece her daughter back together and wait if the power healed her, but nothing had happened and she had only been able to set her families’ souls free.

She had seen her daughter suddenly heal from diseases which were known to end fatal, but it was not true immortality if you could be killed.

Hera sighed under her breath, feeling that it would be best to tell them Jude’s story to make them believe it “We did not suspect anything until Jude saw her fifth summer. A bird had fallen from its nest and its wing was broken. Jude just picked it up and it flew off after a moment. She did not even know how she had done it…”.

Anya remembered clearly still how Marie had somehow patched the flowers back to life directly before the war with the Mountain. The girl had not even realized what she had done back then as well.

As Hera continued to explain, Anya and Lexa both recognized a lot of parallels. The golden glow of the hands or the restrictions in not being able to heal everyone and the repercussions trying to force the power had.

Lexa frowned deeply a moment later “You mean to say that constantly healing us, has made her sick…?” her voice was pitched an octave higher than usual as she ground out the question.

Hera nodded her head in agreement “I have seen it with Jude as well. Using this power does not have an immediate repercussion for the one bearing it. But healing too many and too serious wounds drained Jude. She died in the same way, trying to keep her older sister alive”.

Lexa and Anya bandied a worried gaze as all the instances in which Marie had healed them flashed through their minds. The girl had used her powers much more often before the march against Ice Nation and she had continued to do so whenever she wanted.

By now, Lexa believed in Hera’s words. A part of her still could not believe that Marie truly would wake up again, but the larger part of her mind rejoiced at the clearly valid hope. It worried her how they were supposed to keep Marie from using her talent too often though, the child had begun using it almost randomly immediately before falling asleep.

She had stretched out slightly, grasping onto one of Marie’s hands and she had felt her heart clench painfully at the sensation of the girl’s skin having cooled already without blood being pumped through her veins.

“She feels cold already” Lexa breathed out with slightly wide eyes. She wanted to believe that Marie would wake up, needed to even in a way, but she looked so deathly pale and still that it was almost impossible to imagine the girl opening her eyes again.

Clarke’s gaze switched between Marie, Lexa and the old woman. She found it a little weird that the draining of life force from this miraculous healing power should mimic the symptoms of the leukaemia so fittingly. She rather feared that the old woman may be right partly. The usage of her power could have certainly drained Marie, increasing the force of the leukaemia, but she somehow doubted that it could have been only that. She really hoped that she was wrong, but she was not convinced that there was an existing chance for Marie to wake again. She did keep her thoughts to herself though, it was obvious that Lexa and Anya had already chosen to believe Hera’s tale. She really hoped that they would not be crushed completely if her own premonition became true. But on the other hand, she wondered if it would even be possible for the two women to feel even more distress than they probably already were.

~ ~ ~

Clarke felt as if her foreboding was becoming true, when she noticed that darkness began to fall around them. Several hours must have passed by now, since Marie’s heart had stopped and the girl was still visibly not alive again.

Anya’s expression had lost most of its definite hope, replaced by a stony mask and the general had not moved the slightest bit since sitting down again with Marie’ body in her arms.

Silence had fallen between them long ago and Lexa felt as if the sounds of her own breathing were exploding within her head. She could feel the coldness almost radiating bitingly from Marie’s hand by now and her heart felt as if it was torn to even smaller shreds with every new beat.

Her own fingers shook, when she finally let go of Marie’s hand again and fresh tears stung within her eyes. She chided herself more than just a fool within her head for even entertaining the idea that Marie’s healing power could bring the child back to them. They had lost her. Forever.

And she knew that they would need to accept that. Death was irrevocable after all and she was now more than ever looking forward to her own in a way, hoping to be reunited with her daughter in the next life.

Lexa forcefully put a stop to her dark thoughts, knowing all too well that they would not be helpful in any way. She forced herself up again, feeling her legs nearly give out on her. Her whole body felt weird and she needed a moment to force the words past her lips “Wrap her body, Gustus. We will leave at first light".

Gustus nodded his head with a grim expression, feeling torn between obeying the clear order and holding onto a little hope that the woman’s words carried a little truth still.

Anya’s brown eyes snapped up to Lexa, widened in clear shock and discontent mirrored her features strongly, as her hands tightened around Marie’s frame. “No!” she spoke up loudly in a strong tone. She would not give up on Marie now.

Lexa’s eyes were pained and haunted, a tear fell down her cheek “This is madness, Anya, she is gone...” her voice broke off at the end, as she clenched her jaw against the almost crippling grief rushing through her senses.

“No!” Anya repeated and her brown eyes carried an almost crazed wildness as she bared her teeth at Gustus, who slowly approached the general.

Clarke watched the scene in sadness, wondering why fate was playing such a cruel trick with them at all.

Hera had gotten visibly paler by now, her own daughter had long woken again. She seemed deflated almost. Could it be that this power could not safe the same person twice? Had she only given them false hope?

“One step closer...” Anya threatened in a dark tone, eyes slotted in anger, while one of her hands rested on the handle of a dagger already.

“Anya!" Lexa intervened sharply, voice hard and composure unyielding “Holding onto her will not change...”. Her words stopped abruptly though, while her eyes widened in pure and utter disbelief and she sank to her knees again, next to Anya and Marie.

Marie’s grey eyes were staring back at her and they were not dull and lifeless, but shining and confused.

The child was still deathly pale and clearly afraid of what was happening, her lips began to move the slightest bit, but no sound came past them.

Anya’s brown eyes were wide as well, staring down at the girl in disbelief, wondering if she had just lost her mind and it was mocking her in the cruellest way possible.

“Wh..wha…what happen...” Marie finally got out, the words faint and unfinished, breathing laboured and she seemed unable to control her limbs just yet.

“It is alright...” Lexa reached out almost hesitantly, afraid that she would wake up from this momentary madness, only to look back down at the lifeless body of their daughter. “You will be just alright, little star...”.

 

 

Chapter 253

Clarke stepped closer to Marie quickly, crouching down next to the young girl as well, reaching out and feeling for a pulse. It was obvious that the girl was miraculously breathing again somehow, but her skin was still deathly pale and far too cool to the touch. The child’s pulse was faint and barely detectable under the soft skin of her wrist, but she was unmistakably alive. She could not exactly remember how Marie had been after her “death” in the medical bay, but she knew that the younger girl had revived much quicker back then. She hoped that her internal premonition of the leukaemia still being within Marie’s body would not hold to be true, but rather that this weird reviving process simply took longer now. If that was the case, Clarke wondered if it would even work a third time again for Marie.

“Her pulse is faint and she is too cold” she assessed in a calm tone, sitting back slightly to make more room for Lexa. She guessed that it would be best to let Marie lie down, give her a tea to keep her hydrated and warm and let her rest. It was obvious that the younger girl was confused and probably trying to figure out what had happened in the last hours. Clarke had no inclination as to what Marie must be feeling at this moment. For all intents and purposes, the girl had been physically dead for several hours and she wondered if Marie had still somehow noticed what had been going around her body or if the time which had passed might have just seemed like to sleep to the girl.

Anya still seemed to have the most difficulties to wrap her mind about what her eyes were seeing. The general had not said a single word since Marie had opened her eyes again, but the woman still kept a firm hold on the girl’s body, staring down at her with wide brown eyes.

“Anya, she should lie down” Clarke tried addressing the general directly as it had not seemed as if the older woman had even heard her speaking previously. She reached out again, placing a hand lightly on Marie’s forehead, feeling the coldness which clung to her skin there as well. If she was not mistaken, the girl’s skin still had a slightly ashen hue to it and her lips appeared to be the slightest bit blue, while the dried blood which had bubbled from her mouth and now clung to her lips and chin, contrasted starkly to the girl’s deathly pale complexion. “I will prepare a tea for her” she added in Lexa’s direction, hoping that the general would have a better result in getting Anya out of her apparent daze.

Lexa inclined her head subtly, green eyes barely leaving Marie’s face for more than the tiniest fraction of a second. Her thoughts were still running wildly through her mind. She could also still feel the coldness of Marie’s skin against her own fingers and she did not understand how the girl could be breathing again now, looking up at her with wide and frightened grey eyes. What had just happened in front of their very eyes was against every sense of logic, but so had the strange healing power in itself been already and Lexa forced the loud thoughts within her mind back into silence again.

Tears were visibly glistening within Marie’s grey eyes and the girl’s lips seemed to move faintly, but she did not utter an actual sound again yet. Lexa hardened her resolve; their daughter needed them now, they could think about what had actually happened later.

While she kept on holding to one of Marie’s hands, Lexa placed her other hand over one of Anya’s which was almost clawed around Marie’s thinner upper arm by now. She had intended to give the older woman’s hand a slight squeeze, but it seemed that the simple touch alone was enough already to tear Anya out of her daze.

Anya blinked a few times, before she immediately loosened her harsh grip around Marie’s body. A condemning voice quickly told her within her mind that her fingers would surely have left another bout of fresh bruises around the child’s arms and she felt guilt sweep hotly through her senses. Another tear rolled down her cheeks, when her eyes finally truly connected with Marie’s and all the guilt and doubt was immediately replaced with an encompassing sense of relief. It did not matter at the moment just how Marie was breathing now, but the girl was alive.

She propped Marie up slightly, bringing the girl into a sitting position, while she supported the girl’s body with her own hands, keeping her from sinking back down onto the grass. It was obvious that Marie seemed to lack control over her own body right now and it still retained some sort of heaviness and laxity, while a mixture out of fright and confusion lingered within her grey-eyed gaze.

“Can you stand, little star?” Anya questioned the girl in a carefully gentle tone, as if she were afraid that raising her voice just a little too loud would make the girl shatter to pieces or vanish in front of her eyes.

Marie visibly tried to force her body to move further and a deep frown contorted her features, when she failed to move even the slightest bit.

Lexa immediately reached out and put her hands lightly on the girl’s shoulders, feeling for a second just how thin and frail the girl’s body felt under her touch. The girl had clearly lost weight during the last weeks and she internally wondered why they had not noticed this sooner.

Marie’s grey eyes connected with Lexa’s and the tears seemed to well up in them again, precariously close to spilling over.

Lexa gave the girl’s shoulders the slightest squeeze, somehow in the back of her mind afraid that she could be hurting Marie unintentionally, before she moved them so that she could pick the girl up. She hoisted Marie into her arms and carefully got back to her feet, feeling Anya coming to stand beside herself, hands hovering slightly in front of her, clearly torn between reaching out and making physical contact with Marie and simply staying where she was.

Lexa slowly carried Marie over to their tent and Anya quickened her pace, holding the tent flaps open for her. She looked over her shoulder once, before stepping into the tent with Marie, seeing Gustus following her movements with a clearly relived expression on his features and Clarke mulling around and preparing the promised tea for Marie. She gently bent down and placed Marie in the middle of the furs they shared to sleep in.

During the short walk, Marie’s hands had fisted loosely into Lexa’s coat, holding on as tightly as she physically could at the current moment and tears out of frustration had begun to fall from her eyes.

Lexa gently pried Marie’s fingers from her coat, barely needing to exert any force at all, so that she could settle down next to the girl, bringing them back into contact with each other.

Anya mirrored the commander’s movements, settling down on Marie’s other side and she immediately reached out, one hand softly grabbing onto one of the girl’s hand while the other lightly came to rest on the girl’s side, feeling it move the slightest bit with each inhale and exhale the girl made.

They both waited in silence for Marie to say something, which the girl clearly was still trying to do visibly, content for now to simply hold onto the girl and seeing her breathing again.

Clarke stepped into the tent a moment later, a streaming cup in her hand. She handed the cup over to Lexa with a slight smile. She may not understand how Marie being alive again was scientifically possible, but the girl apparently was and that was all that mattered for now. She wondered if Lexa and Anya might agree for Marie to be examined more in depth by her mother to try and help understand if something within Marie’s body might just be working differently. But she highly doubted that the Trikru women would ever agree to that. She backed out of the tent again a moment later, she was certain that Lexa would call her back if Marie required anything.

Lexa gave the blonde healer the slightest grateful nod, before her attention fully returned to Marie and she gently tried to urge the girl to drink a sip of the tea, after having blown on the surface herself to make sure that the girl would not scald her tongue with the hot liquid.

Marie only reluctantly consumed some of the tea, while she tried to feebly push the cup away from her face, feeling the pressing urge to say what she had been unable to so far.

It took a few more minutes until Marie was able to correctly form her thoughts into her words again and her pale cheeks were already strained with tears. 

“I am … I am soo..sooo sorry” Marie finally ground, looking between Lexa and Anya with wide grey eyes.

“It is alright, little star” Lexa tried to reassure the girl in a gentle tone, sensing that it would certainly be best for Marie to just rest now. The girl’s skin very slowly seemed to get back its natural warmth, but her skin tone still appeared too pale and ashen.

Marie shook her head slightly, as fast as she could at the moment “I heard you” she said, eyes wide and shimmering with tears. She still felt the same desperateness as she had then, trying to reach out and tell Anya and Lexa what she wished, but being unable to.

Lexa’s lips thinned slightly, she remembered now that Marie had told her the same in their tent after she had woken up again in the medical bay. Sadness lingered within her green eyes, while she once again reassured the girl that everything would be alright now.

“I was all alone…” Marie said after a beat of silence and a shiver underlined her tone, grey eyes wide and fearful “I could hear you … but you were not there any longer … or … or I was not…” she broke off for a moment, clenching her jaw and tightening her hands around both of theirs “I could hear you … I am sooo sorry” she repeated with a quivering tone.

Anya’s brown eyes swam in moisture as well and an almost tortured expression had settled onto her features, at hearing of their daughter’s distress. The child had basically been dead for several hours and she did not truly wish to imagine just how this must have felt to Marie.

“I wanted to wake up” Marie continued, grey eyes shining earnestly “I wanted to so badly, I tried so hard … but I couldn’t … no matter what…” she stopped for a moment, as anguish flashed over her features.

Lexa lightly let her hand caress over the girl’s arm, after pulling a fur tighter around her, seeing the girl shiver slightly. She doubted that they needed to say anything right now, but that it would be better to let Marie voice out her thoughts which were probably weighing heavily on her mind. Although the girl’s words were painful to listen to, Lexa still felt immensely relived to hear her voice at all.

“… I tried to search for you … I heard you … but I could not find you … I cried … and I screamed … but I only heard you cry…” the girl broke off in a strangled tone again, grey eyes apologetic and riddled with guilt at having caused them pain in the first place.

“I wanted … I want… I wanted to tell you how much I love you both” Marie added, tears streaming down her cheeks once again and body retention finally seemed to return to her fully, trying to sit back up.

“Sshh, little star” Lexa tried to sooth the girl, pushing her down again the slightest bit, wanting for Marie to remain lying down under the furs. But it was apparent quickly that Marie would not have that and she continued to struggle against the slight pressure, so Lexa let go and instead assisted the child in sitting up.

“…and that I am thankful that you both gave me a family here … and …” Marie continued, sitting upright now, head turning back and forth slightly to look between them “…I did not want to die … and to leave you … I am soooo sorry…”.

Anya gently placed a finger over Marie’s mouth, sealing her lips – a slight frown passed over her features, they still had not wiped off the dried blood from the girl’s skin – and stopping her from apologizing again “We love you too, little star, so much” she assured the girl in a deeply emotional tone “You are here now, that is all that matters”.

Marie sobbed slightly, whole frame shaking, before she launched forward suddenly, one arm wrapping around Anya’s neck, while the other pulled Lexa closer, efficiently hugging both of them at the same time.

Lexa and Anya held on to Marie tightly for a long time, letting the girl cry her heart out to the fullest, while both whispered soft reassurances into the girl’s ears. Both of them visibly startled when the girl’s body grew laxer within their arms long moments later and both breathed out a little easier again at seeing that Marie had simply exerted herself and cried herself to sleep. 

They lowered Marie back down onto the furs, covering her carefully. The girl’s body still was not as warm again as would be considered healthy, but the utter coldness of death had left thankfully.

But as soon as they let go of Marie, intent to shortly stand up and at least get out of the light armour they were both still wearing, Marie’s grey eyes fluttered open again, flashing with utter panic for a second, before she breathed out a shuddering deep breath at spotting both of her moms next to her.

Lexa sighed slightly under her breath, after the scare the girl had lived through during the last hours it was no wonder that she would wish to be with them, Marie had always been clingy after a breakdown before.

“Don’t go” Marie breathed out faintly, tone quivering slightly, an echo of her tears lingering behind.

Anya immediately sat down again, only quickly divesting herself of her coat, the rest could stay in place for now. She lied down beside Marie, pulling the child into a hug “We will stay” she reassured the girl in a gentle tone, brushing a strand of hair from her forehead softly.

Lexa took off her own coat, quickly stripping herself off of her weapons and boots as well, before she joined Anya and Marie. She felt something settle within her mind again finally, as she truly began to believe that their daughter had returned to them.

~ ~ ~

It took only a few moments for Marie to fall asleep, while Lexa lightly hummed the melody of the old lullaby under her breath.

Both of them enjoyed the peaceful moment in quietness, feeling the girl’s skin warming again, while they both watched her chest rise and fall in a steady rhythm again.

Anya waited for long moments, before she slowly eased out of the girl’s embrace, feeling that her skin desperately needed to be cleaned off the dried blood.

Lexa’s eyes followed the general in silence, as the older woman wetted a wash cloth with fresh water and returned to them. She was almost afraid to break the silence, a part of her mind had already accepted that Marie truly was alive, but a small lingering part feared that this could still be a weird dream of some sort.

Anya gently dabbed at the dried blood around Marie’s mouth, hoping not to wake the girl up again. But the blood was such a stark reminder of what had happened, that she felt that it needed to be removed immediately. “She is truly here” she said after long moments, keeping watch on the girl’s features, relaxed now in sleep.

Lexa nodded her head in mute agreement “We have gotten another chance” she added after a moment of hesitation, carding her fingers softly through Marie’s blonde hair.

“Do you think she is still sick?” Anya asked with a thoughtful expression on her features. The thought had gone through her head for some time now, clawing at her mind in fear.

Lexa’s features contorted slightly, she wanted to disagree immediately and with conviction. But she actually could not as the same doubt clung to her own thoughts. They did not know if Marie’s symptoms had really been only caused by a continuous depletion of her life force, like Hera had claimed, or if a certain amount could stem from the actual disease. She guessed that time would tell and show them how Marie would do in the next days. “We will see” she finally settled on in a heavy tone. She could not allow her mind to let this doubt to fester now.

Anya tightened her arms slightly around Marie, prompting a slight sigh from the sleeping girl.

“Don’t wake her up” Lexa warned the general. The girl needed to rest, just as they needed rest too, but Lexa doubted that either of them would be able to find any this night. She had not been able to quieten her thoughts all those months ago, after they had thought the first time to have lost the girl.

Marie’s body had grown warm again as the time passed and her skin was slowly regaining its normal colour as well. They hoped that the girl would truly be alright again in the morning.

Anya loosened her arms again around Marie’s body and her expression was so open and vulnerable, displaying her pain visibly, when she said “We cannot ever lose her again…”.

Lexa inclined her head, swallowing down the lump lodged deep within in her throat. She knew just how much truth the general’s words carried “We will bring her to the ocean now” she proclaimed instead in a steady tone. They had truly been granted another chance with Marie and she would continue to spend their time with their daughter in the certainty that it nearly had been their last day together.

 

 

 

Chapter 254

The night passed slowly for Anya and Lexa, both still fearing slightly that Marie would either simply stop breathing again or that they had been sleeping all along and the girl would be dead again if they woke up from this shared dream.

Marie woke up on the next morning, nearly in the exact same position as she had fallen asleep in. She opened her eyes with a smile brightening up her features at being sheltered by warmth and comfort like that, but it froze noticeably when the memories of the previous day flashed up within her mind and she tightened her hands slightly, gripping onto Lexa and Anya likewise, letting out a slightly whimpering sound.

Both women had only dozed lightly and were immediately roused by the girl’s touch and muted sound of distress.

“How do you feel, little star?” Lexa asked worriedly, green eyes immediately scanned over Marie’s face, reaching out and feeling the girl’s forehead as well. She paused for a second when she noticed that the bump on the child’s forehead had disappeared completely, just as the bruises which had still been visible on her chin.

Marie tried to focus on the presence, trying to ban the memories from yesterday from her mind and get her breathing back under control. She focused her attention on her own body instead, trying to actually get a feeling of her body right now and her smile was tentative again as she answered “Fine, I really feel fine again” confusion littered her grey eyes. She had always felt tired in the last few days and without a tea or Clarke’s medication, there had also always been a headache left, but now she really just felt fine, healthy and refreshed even.

Her eyes blitzed slightly “Can we go to the ocean now?” she asked Lexa with enthusiasm, grey eyes shining in anticipation.

Lexa smiled gently at the girl, brushing another strand of blonde hair out of the child’s face “We will reach it today” she promised in an honest tone. She had thought about it the previous night already; they would be continuing their journey as planned.

“Yay!” Marie exclaimed joyfully as she remembered that they had yesterday already seen the glittering surface of the ocean in the distance “Let’s go, let’s go, let’s go!!!” she squealed, winding out of Anya’s and Lexa’s arms quickly.

Anya watched the girl with a slight frown. She could barely believe how lively and chirpy the child seemed to be now. During the last few days they had barely been able to rouse the girl in the mornings, having to force her to take the medicines supplied by Clarke, before the girl truly even spoke more than a few words. This version of the girl now reminded her so much more of the child she had gotten to know and love and she felt her own lips tilting upwards into a smile. Her own body felt heavy from lack of rest and a headache pounded behind her temples, but she barely felt her own discomfort at being able to see Marie’s bright smile again, feeling it warm her heart immediately.

Lexa smirked at the girl’s antics “We shall have breakfast before” she appeased Marie in a calm tone.

Marie pouted a little “Can’t we leave now?” she tried instead, giving the woman her best impression of an innocent look with big wide eyes. A slight frown settled onto her features when her stomach audibly rumbled in hunger a second later. She had almost forgotten this feeling by now, as the mere thought of food had usually been enough to make her stomach clench uncomfortably and if Lexa and Anya had not continued to encourage and nearly force her to eat, she probably would not have eaten at all anymore.

“That’s a definite yes for breakfast then” Anya stood up from the bed as well, stretching herself for a moment, before she held out a hand for Marie and led the girl out of the tent.

Marie smiled brightly at Gustus, when the burly man stepped closer to her and she enthusiastically hugged the guard, letting go of Anya for now.

“Welcome back” Gustus said in a kind tone “don’t you dare scare us like that again” he added, dark eyes looking down at the girl with an only half serious expression.

Marie ducked her head with a slightly guilty smile “I had not meant to…” she began to justify herself in a hesitant tone, biting at her lower lip slightly.

Anya stopped the girl’s ramble by squeezing one of her shoulders and glared at the burly man, lips thinning in mute warning.

Marie glanced over her shoulder at Anya, frowning a little at the dark expression resting on the woman’s features.

Anya gave the girl a gentle push towards the fire. She saw that Clarke was already sitting there, accompanied by Hera, both already consuming their own breakfast as it seemed.

Clarke immediately stood up from the fire, discarding her plate for now, coming up to meet Marie, inspecting the child quickly. It was obvious on the first glance that Marie seemed to be much healthier today. Her skin had a much healthier complexion and she just noticed now that all of her visible bruises had disappeared as well again. If she had not seen the girl essentially die last night and having seen her health decline over the last weeks, there would be no sign now that anything had ever been wrong with the girl to begin with. The only thing striking was that she was too thin now, but that would certainly redeem itself with time again.

Lexa stepped out of the tent just in the moment as Clarke hugged Marie as well, welcoming the girl back with an honest expression and an encouraging smile.

“We will see the ocean today” Marie exclaimed once she stepped back from Clarke, tone slightly higher with anticipation and a giddy smile on her features.

Clarke breathed out a slight laugh at the girl’s apparent anticipation. She had of course never seen the ocean in real life either so far and was honestly looking forward to it as well. It was really refreshing to see the younger girl act so childishly now. Clarke could barely remember now, if she ever had really gotten to know this version of the younger girl at all.

“Breakfast first” Anya chided the girl in a tone underlined with a hint of sternness, guiding the girl farther towards the fire with gentle hands.

Clarke walked over to Lexa, meeting the commander halfway.

“She seems utterly healthy again” the blonde healer said, glancing back at Anya and Marie who now sat together at the fire and her voice carried the confusion about that clearly. On a medical and scientific level she was absolutely incapable of understanding how Marie could be breathing right now at all, but she had resigned herself to the fact that it did not really matter either. Humanity should have died out on the surface of the earth long ago and the grounders had. Black blood should not exist at all and yet it was pumped through Lexa’s veins and those of the other nightbloods. Maybe there just were things on earth which did not require to be understood at all.

Anya watched the girl quickly wolf down her breakfast with slightly wide eyes, the girl had not shown such an appetite in a long time. They had had to encourage the girl to eat at least a few bites of her food during the last days as the child’s stomach had become more and more upset. “Slow down, Marie, you will make yourself sick like that" she warned the girl, placing a hand on the girl’s thigh for a moment.

Marie looked up for a second, grey eyes connecting with Anya’s minutely, she swallowed her mouthful of food down and inclined her head, trying to continue eating at a slower pace now. But the plate had been cleared all too soon and Marie looked down at it with a slight frown, not feeling entirely full just yet. She spared a glance at Anya’s plate, trying to judge mutely if she could ask the general for some of her breakfast.

Anya’s lips tilted upwards into a smile, offering her plate to Marie. She hoped that the girl would not get sick from ingesting too much food but she felt that the girl should eat her fill and she had noticed the girl glancing at her plate with an almost longing look within her grey eyes.

Marie accepted the plate with a grateful smile and a slightly sheepish look passed over her features, before she simply continued to eat with gusto.

Lexa sat down on Marie’s other side with a content expression. She sensed that her former doubt of Marie actually having this leukaemia was not founded at all, the child appeared utterly healthy again and which soothed her internal doubts even further, Marie seemed happy and completely relaxed for once.

When Marie had cleared the rest of Anya’s plate as well, her grey eyes flitted over to Hera and a slight frown settled on her features as she remembered the older woman’s words to Lexa and Anya. She had not understood everything the woman had told them clearly, having been too distressed at not being able to wake herself up again, but it had stuck within her mind that the woman’s daughter had this talent at all. Marie had not understood if Jude – she hoped to remember the name correctly – was still alive or not, but it had sounded suspiciously as if she had died in the past. According to what she had understood, she may not ever have had the leukaemia which had killed her mother, but her own power had made her this sick. Did this mean that she could not use it to heal those she cared about if needed? She rather hoped not, if one of them would get hurt, she would always use her power, even if she made herself weaker or sick that way. She had somehow survived, so she guessed it was logical to assume that it would happen this way again in the future.

She could not remember really how long she had been unconscious during the time in the medical bay. Time seemed to pass differently in this weird whatever state it actually was. She had no real idea how long she had not been awake during the previous night either. It could have been a few moments or minutes only, but it could also have been several hours. From what she had distinctly hear around her, Marie concluded that it probably had rather been hours that she had missed on, but the longer she had not been able to wake up, the more indistinct the sounds and voices had become around her, even as if she had somehow been in the process of moving further away from them.

She turned her gaze to Lexa and Anya again, feeling the question of how long she had been gone yesterday more important now. She voiced it tentatively, not quiet sure on which words to use. It was weird to think that she had purely medically spoken been dead.

Lexa looked at the girl with a mixture out of sadness, relief and compassion. She had feared already that Marie would not just forget what had happened. “You have not drawn breath for several hours" she answered almost bluntly in a calm tone, reaching out and taking of the girl’s smaller hands in between her own, rubbing the soft skin gently.

Marie’s gaze was scrutinizing as she looked at Lexa. She had sensed already that she had been out for longer than a few minutes, but hearing the confirmation of that was different somehow and it felt as if she could not breath for a moment, as her heart clenched painfully. No wonder that Anya and Lexa had truly mourned for her death like that, someone who died usually did not wake up again after all. She remained silent for long moments, internally wondering if this weird state she had experienced had truly been how eternal death looked like, being all alone and still being able to hear some of what had been going on around her, but unable to interact with the living anymore, or if she had lingered in some sort of in between state. Maybe her mind had known all along that this “death" would not be the final end. But somehow this did not seem the case either, the fear and frustration at what was happening, wanting to say something still, hearing Lexa and Anya grief for her, had felt all too real and paralyzing for her mind to know that she would wake up again. She guessed that she would have been somewhat calmer then.

“How do you feel?” Lexa asked in a cautious tone, giving the girl’s hand a soft squeeze. Marie had remained silent for several minutes now, eyes wide opened and apparently staring at nothing in particular.

Marie blinked a few times, shaking her musings from her mind for now and she smiled again when she remembered that they would continue towards the ocean shortly “Are we gonna leave now?” she retorted, completely ignoring the commander’s question with a hopeful glint within her grey eyes.

Anya snorted slightly under her breath at the girl’s antics “We shall have to add patience to the virtues you will have to learn still” she remarked; the hint of a mock underlined her tone.

Marie frowned slightly at the general’s comment, but another thought crossed her mind “I am going to see Ontari and Risha again" she exclaimed with an almost blinding smile “and we can go to Azgeda like Roan offered” she added after a momentarily pause. She had been saddened before that she would never have the opportunity to travel there again, play in the snow and maybe even encounter an ice bear.

“Yes, you certainly will" Lexa agreed with a loving expression. She would make sure personally that Marie got to see as much of this world as possible. She hoped that now that for the first time in their history after the bombs had destroyed the old world, there was a chance at lasting peace between the clans, that she would gradually be able to decrease her workload. She wished to show Marie as much of this world as possible, making sure their daughter experienced everything there potentially was to. She wanted her to be truly happy. Maybe there would even be the potential to venture over the borders of the coalition lands, no commander before her had had the opportunity to do so and she personally was curious if there were not other survivors somewhere on earth.

Anya rolled her eyes at the girl’s conclusion. She knew already now that she would surely be the one to bring Marie into the north at one point then, surely accompanied by Ontari and only time would tell just how much time Lexa might be able to take off of her duties for journeys simply for Marie’s sake. She was more than relived that they would not have to return to the capitol with Marie’s corpse, preparing for the ceremony to set her spirit free. She was not sure how Ontari would have reacted to this event, the Ice Nation nightblood had refused until the very last minute to believe in the fact that Marie would die.

A slight smile tilted the corners of her lips upwards as she thought about the possibilities this second chance now offered. Anya would make sure that the ceremony to claim the child as her own would take place as soon as possible. They had all learned the hard way now, just how short life and how cruel fate could be.

~ ~ ~

After breakfast Marie impatiently waited for the camp to be dismantled. She had thought about approaching Hera and asking more about her daughter, but she had discarded the idea for now. The old woman would accompany them to the Boat People, intending to seek refuge there.

She wanted to help in the actual process of packing their things back up together, hoping that it would pass quicker than, but to her great frustration Lexa and Anya both did not yet seem convinced that she was really healthy and back to her former strength again and preferred for her to remain sitting by the fire.

Marie stared moodily into the dancing flames, tapping her feet impatiently and she found herself alone with Hera. The old woman had enough troubles with moving that she was not required to help either.

When Marie teared her gaze from the flames and looked back up, her eyes immediately connected with Hera’s dark ones; the old woman seemed to have been staring at her nonstop since she had stepped out of the tent with Anya in the morning and internally Marie was unnerved by this continued scrutinizing watch.

“Has your daughter been able to heal everyone with her talent?” she broke the uncomfortable silence finally, looking at the old woman with honest interest. She knew so little about her own healing powers and the chance to find out more was tempting.

Hera shook her head “No, she has not been able to. You obviously cannot either” she concluded with a thoughtful expression.

Marie tilted her head slightly to the side in confusion. She had not said anything about herself after all.

“You would not have asked like that if you could” Hera explained with the hint of a smile at the girl’s features flashing up with understanding; it was obvious that the blonde child possessed a natural curiosity and inert trust in those around her.

Clarke stepped over to Anya and Lexa who were both together dismantling their tent in quick practised procedures. She had noticed already how overbearingly the two women were treating Marie now, obviously afraid that the girl’s apparent increase in health would not be permanent. By now, she herself was relatively sure that they would not have anything to fear in that regard. The girl appeared much livelier than she could even remember having witnessed before and she was fairly certain that the way her moms treated her now would quickly become annoying to Marie.

“You do not have to fear any longer that she could collapse any moment” she addressed the both of them likewise in a kind tone, glancing over her shoulder quickly and seeing Marie listening with curiously shining eyes to something Hera was telling her.

Anya’s features flashed with slight annoyance, while Lexa inclined her head in mute acknowledgement, barely halting in their procedures and continuing to work in silence instead.

Clarke sighed under her breath “I cannot detect anything worrying about her condition right now. She is obviously also able to eat normally again. You both know that Marie needs to be treated as normally as possible…” she let her words trail off in a slightly heavy tone. Even though the girl may now physically be better than she had been in weeks, it was unreasonable to assume that her mind had miraculously processed all the trauma the child had been forced through during the last year.

It was obvious that her words had affected both women deeply and Clarke felt almost guilty for mentioning anything at all, but she knew that she was right. She did not doubt that both of them would allow Marie to remain clingier than usual but becoming overbearing with the girl would not help her at all in the long run. They would be foolish to assume that Marie was whole again now because she was not physically sick and they all needed to remember that, being prepared for the girl to eventually break down again and being there to piece her back together when it happened.

 

Chapter 255

Clarke saw immediately that her well meant words of advice had not had any effect on Lexa and Anya. They both were obviously too affected by nearly loosing the girl for real, again, to now treat the child normally. They were both extremely worried that Marie might even acquire a single scratch and she was not sure right now, if it was actually the younger girl seeking out physical contact to either of the two women constantly or if it was rather the other way around.

For now, Marie seemed too ecstatic about reaching the ocean for real to really care too much about how overbearingly she was treated right now. Clarke rather suspected that the girl was currently enjoying this constant attention, but she highly doubted that this would last too long. She did not try to talk to Anya and Lexa about it again though and simply continued to watch silently.

Her own lingering worries about Marie’s health declined with every passing hour. The child did not seem exhausted or sick in any way any longer and her grey eyes seemed to constantly shift around their surroundings, taking all the details in with clear childish wonder, pointing out certain things in an enthusiastic tone.

As they had continued to travel from Polis in the direction of the ocean, the vegetation around them had slowly been changing and now that they had nearly reached the ocean, the trees had thinned out visibly and Marie continued to spot different plants, which she had not seen before at all. But what obviously fascinated her most, were the colourful butterflies they encountered.

“You will find them even more beautiful at night” Anya commented when Marie pointed out yet another butterfly lazily flying by them. They were travelling at a moderate paste since Gustus had given up his horse for Hera and was leading the mount on foot instead, so Marie had more than enough time to look around.

Marie turned her gaze from the butterfly over to Anya riding beside her and Lexa “Why?” she asked with a slightly sideward tilted head.

“They glow” Lexa chimed in, tightening her arm around Marie slightly. Now that the girl was visibly awake, she was moving around too much in the saddle and Lexa worried that the child could slip and fall down.

Marie’s expression clearly showed that she was trying to imagine how that looked like, but the slight confusion flashing through her eyes clearly portrayed that she failed to come up with a satisfactory image.

“You will see them later” Anya promised, remembering minutely that Marie also never had gotten to see the fluorescent flowers at night.

“How do they glow?” Marie asked after inclining her head slightly as curiosity burned within her eyes, watching yet another butterfly float past them.

“They glow once it is dark” Lexa answered easily, watching the butterfly for a moment as well.

“Yeah, but how? What makes them glow?” her gaze scrutinized the butterfly, as if it could somehow explain how that worked.

Anya’s brows furrowed for a moment, she honestly did not know the answer, neither had she contemplated such a thing before. They just did glow; she had never thought to question why that was the fact at all.

A clearly dissatisfied frown settled on Marie’s features when both Lexa and Anya remained silent, clearly not intending to give her an answer.

Clarke smiled slightly, urging her horse to close up with Lexa’s and she began to explain to Marie what she remembered about autofluorescence from her lessons at school. Marie had not been able to attend school for long enough to have reached this kind of lessons yet. She regarded it as slightly astounding to observe just how naturally curious the younger girl still was. It was almost as if she had not been forced through hell during the last year. She acted almost like a normal child her age was expected to behave now.

~ ~ ~

“Can you smell it already?” Lexa asked in a low tone, bending forward slightly to whisper the words into the girl’s ears.

“Smell what?” Marie retorted with a slightly confused frown. She visibly breathed in a little deeper, trying to figure out what the commander was eluding to, prompting her nose to curl in a rather cute way.

Anya snorted under her breath, amused and gentle expression on her features “The salt in the air” she explained in a kind tone.

Marie scrunched up her nose again, shaking her head in the negative with a slightly frustrated expression.

“You will recognize it later” Lexa tried to appease the child in a soft tone. She could already see the seagulls flying above them and their shrill shrieks had been resonating around them for some time now.

Marie leaned back slightly against Lexa, not out of fatigue, but simply to be closer to the woman. She could finally take in the beautiful sight around them to the fullest again. She was impatiently awaiting to finally see the ocean up close for the first time.

~ ~ ~

It took them until midday to leave the woods behind them, breaking through the treeline and the view to the ocean was clear.

Lexa pulled her horse to a stop immediately and she dismounted quickly, holding up her hands to help down her daughter.

Marie’s head turned into the direction of the sea at once, twisting around even before Lexa had sat her down on the ground. Her grey eyes were wide with wonder and her mouth hung open slightly, forming a little shape of an o. She began to move into the direction of the sea, but Lexa grasped onto her, keeping her back by the shoulders.

“Wait” Lexa cautioned the girl, changing her grip from the child’s shoulders to one of her hands instead. She did not want for Marie to carelessly run towards the water. She could slip and fall, hitting her head, twisting an ankle or drowning herself accidentally at worse.

“Take of your coat and boots” she told the girl letting go of her hand for a moment and quickly unbuckled her own coat, while Marie hastily followed her orders. Once the girl had shrugged off her coat, boots and socks, Lexa crouched down in front of her, rolling her pants up as well, before she took hold of one of her hands again. The girl could swim for real in the water later, so letting her walk through it with her feet would surely be enough for now.

Anya had dismounted as well, taking the reigns of Lexa’s horse and handing them over to Gustus. She stepped over to Lexa and Marie, grasping hold of the child’s other hand.

Marie tugged at both of their hands sharply “I want to get closer” she exclaimed impatiently, glancing at both of them respectively.

“Be careful, little star” Lexa admonished the girl in a firm tone, green eyes still showing the lingering worry for their daughter. Her mind did not yet allow her to believe that the child truly was alright again.

Marie frowned slightly, not quiet seeing what could be happening to her at all now. She could not see any animals, besides this loudly screeching weird birds flying above them, and the water of the ocean seemed calm, it moved in soft waves in front of her eyes.

Together they slowly went closer to the shore, hand in hand.

But once Marie stepped onto the shore, which was actually not covered by soft sand but rather larger round pebbles, she slipped.

Lexa tightened her hand around Marie quickly, going as far as slipping her other arm around the girl’s smaller body and picking her up, instead of letting the girl walk over to the water herself, she carried her the rest of the way.

Marie slightly wiggled around in Lexa’s grasp once the seemingly endless surface of the water came into touching distance “Let me down, I want to touch it” she demanded with a little whine.

Anya had let go of Marie and stood slightly behind Lexa; arms crossed over her chest. “Just let her touch the water already” she exclaimed with a hint of amusement tinting her tone. She doubted that something would happen to Marie, they were both standing directly next to the girl after all and they had travelled all the way for the girl to get her to the ocean.

Instead of letting go of the girl, Lexa actually tightened her hold on her smaller body, as a visibly torn expression rested on her features. She nevertheless walked into the water with Marie still held tightly to her chest, until the water reached up to her thighs and she felt her own trousers getting soaked with the water. “It is too cold for you to swim in” she assessed in a worried tone, feeling the coldness against her own exposed skin.

Marie frowned and her brows knitted together, trying to bend down to at least touch the glittering surface with her fingers, but Lexa did hold on too tightly for her to actually accomplish that. She glanced over her shoulders and saw Anya walking up to them while Clarke had also taken off her boots and let the soft waves slowly wash over toes with a definitely entranced expression. “Mommy, I wanna get down…” she looked at Lexa with big grey pleading eyes, but her innocent look did not seem to work at all, as she felt Lexa’s arms tighten just the slightest bit more in reaction.

Anya shook her head at the brunette’s antics, rolling her eyes, before she stepped up directly behind them and in one quick movement, gave the commander a strong push, causing her to lose her balance and tumble into the water.

Marie let out a surprised shriek at the sensation of suddenly falling, but it took her only a moment to submerge into the water. Coldness engulfed her senses momentarily and luckily the water was deep enough already that she did not crash onto the ground. Before she even had the chance to panic about being underwater, two strong hands grabbed her under her shoulders, hoisting her up from under the water and setting her down on her feet.

Marie looked up, blinking rapidly to clear the water from her eyes, breathing still erratic from the short moment of shock to her system and she felt her heart almost hammering within her chest and her eyes connected with Anya’s brown ones. It was obvious that Anya regarded the whole situation as incredibly amusing, the smirk resting on her features prompted little lines to appear around her mouth and eyes which were shining with mirth.

“You promised not to throw me in again” she finally exclaimed after the beat of a second. Marie noted Lexa standing up from the water again and beside herself, a laugh was pulled from her at the absolutely not impressed expression darkening the commander’s features.

“Technically, I pushed Lexa and not you” Anya reasoned easily, corners of her lips tilting upwards into a smile and she met the commander’s glowering gaze totally unfazed.

Marie shook her head with a smile brightening up her face and she turned her attention from both of them to the water around herself. She had to agree with Lexa that it was rather cold, but she remembered that the stream Anya had pushed her into in TonDC had in fact been much colder already.

She smiled a little brighter when she let her gaze travel all around her. The sun was standing high above them on the horizon, turning the seemingly endless water ahead of them into a glittering surface. Soft little waves played around her knees and the water was so clear that she could see the pebbles beneath her feet. It took her only a short moment to note a few small fish swimming ahead of her.

“Look, look, there are fish” she pointed out excitedly, she pointed a finger at the direction, grey eyes wide and only looking back at Lexa and Anya for a second, before she returned her attention to the fish. Marie quickly stepped further into the water and closer to the fishes.

Marie’s steps wobbled a little when the pebbles beneath her feet began to shift from her bodyweight and she held out both of her arms, trying to regain her balance on the slippery ground. She frowned a little when she noticed that the fish immediately swam away when she got even remotely close to them. She tried to move faster through the water, wanting to touch one of the fishes with her fingers, curious as to how a fish actually felt. She could not remember if she ever had eaten a fish before, but she had definitely not touched one.

“Be careful, Marie” Lexa chided the girl in a slightly firm tone, following the girl’s every move, not wanting her to fall and injure herself.

“She will be fine” Anya tried to reason with her former second. Even if Marie fell, she should not acquire anything more serious than a few scratches at best. The girl had not fallen sick after bathing in the stream in TonDC either and she somehow felt that physically their daughter truly was alright again.

“She could fall and she could drown” Lexa retorted, giving the general a dark look as almost irrational worry passed through her green eyes.

Anya rolled her eyes at the younger woman “As if we would let her drown” she commented in a sarcastic tone. She looked back over at Marie, the child seemed to be having fun in her attempted chase of the fishes swimming around her, not that she would have any success though. “She is having fun, look” she inclined her head towards the girl playing around in the water and as if to emphasize her words, Marie giggled loudly as she truly slipped and landed on her backside in the water. The girl barely remained in her place for a second, before she had gotten back to her feet, big smile on her young features and began to chase behind the fish again.

Lexa sighed under her breath, lips thinning slightly, clearly still not entirely convinced that the girl was truly fine. She visibly fidgeted in her place, obviously torn between letting Marie be and simply watch over the girl and going over to her and pick her up again, physically protecting her from every potential harm there could be.

“Let her be for a few minutes” Anya suggested in a calm tone, brown eyes never really leaving Marie playing slightly ahead of them. The girl had not yet gone far enough into the water to actually need to swim and could still securely stand and walk around. She knew that Marie’s swimming skills were severely lacking but they would have more than enough opportunities during the next days to remedy that. She did not know for certain what Marie found so amusing about chasing behind the fish – a clearly senseless action – but the girl’s joyful laughs resonated around them loud enough to convince her that she did not have to understand it either.

~ ~ ~

Clarke stepped closer to the two Trikru women almost hesitantly.

She could not fully ban the kiss between her and Lexa from her mind and a deep sadness lingered within her mind. She had been so certain that they would find back together that the certainty of this not coming true felt like a heavy stone resting within her stomach uncomfortably. She had no idea just why things had changed between them during their time of separation, but she had had to realize that something unavoidably had changed.

Neither of them would be able to force their feelings to rekindle to the fullest and although Clarke was certain that she would forever feel deeply connected to Lexa until she drew her last breath, she did not know for sure how to tread around her now. What were they to each other now? Former lovers? Friends? Confidents? Or was she solely another member of Skykru now to the commander, being useful solely because of her skills as a healer? She did not have the answers yet and Clarke did not know on how to ask for them either, neither if she truly wished to get them. She hoped that Lexa and her would somehow retain some closeness. Even if they would not be lovers any longer, she cared for the brunette and her wellbeing and she knew just how few friends the young leader had. She wanted to be there for her still, if the stoic brunette would allow her to, but Clarke did not yet know on how to signal as such to the other woman.

She thought about pointing out how happy Marie appeared right now, but she stopped the words from leaving. The girl’s joy was obvious without any need for words right now.

“It looks so peaceful here” she commented in an almost dreamy tone into the near silence, only interrupted by Marie’s occasional giggles and laughs.

Lexa glanced over her shoulder at the blonde woman and beside the outwardly calm expression on Clarke’s face, she could still sense her internal agitation. She inclined her head in acknowledgement “It truly is” she agreed in a thoughtful tone. She still looked back fondly on the few visits she had made to the boat people in the past and she could fully understand why so many people from the other clans had went there to seek refuge from their almost constant wars.

“I thought the boat people live here” Clarke exclaimed with the hint of confusion in her tone. She had been unable to spot even the slightest trace of other human beings in their surroundings so far.

“They do” Lexa agreed and a slight smile ghosted around her lips “But you won’t be able to see where they live from here. They hide their home well and keep the way to it strictly secret”.

Clarke frowned at that and a million questions seemed to pass through her eyes.

Lexa’s attention was diverted from Clarke by Marie slipping yet again ahead of them and she finally had enough of watching the girl play around in the water, worrying that the child could have hurt herself now, even though she had not the eight times – not that she had counted – she had fallen down before.

The commander stepped over to Marie, offering her hands to the child to grasp “You can continue to play later in the water” she said, green eyes scanning over the girl’s body immediately, looking for any potential scrap, bruise or deeper injury.

Marie pouted a little “Five more minutes?” she tried to bargain with an innocent look.

Lexa’s strong expression wavered for a second, but she shook her head in the negative. They had been in the water for some time now and she knew that the boat people would need some time to reach them and bring them to their place and she did not wish for them to have to do so in the darkness of the night “No, Marie, we need to notify the boat people to our presence now” she explained.

Fortunately, the mention of the boat people immediately caught Marie’s attention and the girl willingly let herself be hoisted from the water now and back into Lexa’s arms, slinging her smaller arms around the commander’s neck immediately. “Love you” she exclaimed, lying her wet cheek against Lexa’s throat comfortably.

Lexa tightened her arms around the girl’s smaller body, carrying her from the water and back towards the shore “Love you too, little star”. She knew that she had not always retorted something to the girl’s declarations of love, but she would from now on. She was still too aware of the fact that the girl could be torn from them at any moment and she would never know when it had actually been her last chance to acknowledge their connection, she would not let them pass by any longer.

 

Chapter 256

Marie’s previously clearly joyful expression turned into a frown once they had reached the shore and Lexa loosened their embrace, setting her down on the ground again. Her utterly wet clothes were clinging uncomfortably to her skin and the formerly gentle breeze now felt more like a strong wind against her wet skin and she shivered immediately.

“Let’s get you out of these wet clothes” Lexa said, guiding the girl further along the shore, where Gustus had begun to pile up logs for a fire, which they would later also need to alert the boat people to their presence.

Marie frowned when she noted that the burly guard had not just piled together dried pieces of wood but that there was also a smaller pile of some weird looking twigs with leaves she had never seen before so far. “What are those for?” she asked curiously, pointing at them.

Anya had followed Lexa and Marie back to the shore and stepped closer to the girl to help her change her clothing quickly, so that Lexa was free to do the same, as she was as soaked through as Marie was. “You will see that later” she vaguely answered, crouching down in front of Marie to help the girl get rid of the clothes sticking to her skin.

Marie was visibly uncomfortable when Anya also pushed down her underwear, leaving her completely naked and she immediately moved her hands in front of her body, tying to hide herself from view.

Anya rolled her eyes at the girl’s antics. She had already prepared a pile of clothes for Marie to change into and held a towel open for the girl, helping her dry off quickly.

“But what are the tw…” Marie began to ask again, once her lower body was clothed again and Anya just had slipped a shirt over her head.

“How was that about learning patience again?” Anya retorted, one brow raised critically and a hint of strictness lay within her tone.

Marie ducked her head with a sheepish expression, but the curiosity was not muted in the slightest burning in her grey eyes. 

Lexa had dressed into another set of clothes by now as well and motioned the girl over to her. She still remembered vividly how she had made her first visit here in Anya’s company and the woman had let her burn the twigs back then without telling her on what to expect to happen either.

Marie obediently stepped closer to the commander with an expectant expression on her features.

Gustus had lit the fire by now and Lexa bend down to retrieve some of the twigs, handing one over to Marie.

“What do I do with it?” Marie questioned with a slight frown, twirling the twig within her fingers.

“Toss it into the fire” Lexa instructed with a slight smile.

Marie’s brows furrowed in obvious confusion, but she obeyed the seemingly weird instruction without further question. Her eyes widened noticeably when the fire turned from a normal red to a blazing green colour “Wow” she exclaimed with wonder within her grey eyes.

Lexa watched the girl’s reaction with a loving expression, she had reacted in a similar fashion as far as she could remember.

Marie’s expression turned distinctly disappointed when the green colour of the flames changed back to a normal red all too quickly.

Lexa handed the girl another of the twigs with a slight smile which only brightened when Marie let out a joyful “whooping” sound, throwing the next twig into the fire and watching it change colour yet again.

“What is the purpose of this?” Clarke asked, coming to stand next to Anya, as her blue eyes remained fixed on the green flames. She guessed that these plants must contain a certain kind of chemical which turned the flames this colour although she could not think of one just yet.

Marie was wondering the same thing and eagerly awaited an answer from the general. She highly doubted that changing the colour of the flames was just done because it was possible.

“The Boat People live close enough to see fire and it alerts them that someone is close by who wants to seek them out” Anya explained easily.

Lexa continued to supply Marie with one twig after the other and the girl readily burned each of them, watching the green flames completely entranced by them.

“How long do they require to come here?” Clarke asked in interest. She wondered just where exactly the Boat People actually lived. If they were able to make out the green fire, it could certainly not be too far away, so it confused her that she could not see anything at all from them. If the Boat People were really a complete clan, she was certain that their settlement should be easily visible.

“It takes a while” Anya retorted and when she noticed how curious Clarke and Marie likewise appeared to be, she added “They live in secrecy, away from the other clans. This allows them to lead the peaceful way of living they use.”

Marie frowned a little, knowing that Anya’s definition of “a while” could easily mean until next morning in fact and she also wondered just where the Boat People actually lived. Now that she thought about it, she had never cared to ask Boo for specifics, she knew that the boy came from here after all.

“How long are we going to stay with them?” she chimed in, tossing the last of the twigs into the fire and looking between Anya and Lexa expectantly.

“A few days” Lexa answered vaguely, sitting down in front of the fire. It should not take the delegation of the Boat People much longer than an hour or two to reach them, so they could simply wait by the fire.

Marie smiled brightly at the prospect of being away from Polis for longer. She felt slightly guilty at the thought though. Ontari, Risha and the other nightbloods were surely missing her as well. But being able to spend time with Lexa and Anya away from Polis was special and the commander had much more time for her outside of her daily duties.

“And what are we all going to do?” she asked with shining eyes. She could not picture yet how the Boat People lived, so she had no idea what they even could potentially be doing during their stay.

“You will see” Anya exclaimed in a slightly sharp tone, before Lexa even had the opportunity to answer the question.

Marie frowned slightly but let herself be diverted easily enough by Lexa motioning her closer and she sat down so close to the commander that she could immediately lean close against her and one of Lexa’s arms pulled her even closer.

They spent the wait for the Boat People with easy talk sitting around the fire. Marie listened raptly to Lexa’s tale about having been here as a child already with Anya.

Marie had been so entranced by Lexa’s words that she had completely stopped paying attention to their surroundings. She let out a loud startled shriek, when she noticed dark shapes materialising themselves all around them. She had not even noticed before that they had been waiting for so long now, that the sun was slowly setting and it had become darker around them already, which only had served to disguise the dark figures approaching them.

Lexa tightened her arm around Marie and soothingly caressed over the child’s arm. She, Anya and Gustus had of course long noticed the Boat People approaching them, but she was not truly surprised that Marie had failed to notice the same.

“Commander” one of them addressed her respectfully. The Boat People had been notified beforehand of her impending arrival, so they easily recognized her now.

Lexa let go of Marie and stood up in one fluid motion, inclining her head towards the Boat People.

Marie stood up as well, standing as close to Lexa as possible. She had never seen people were something like this, on first glance she was not entirely convinced that they were facing human beings at all. She watched with wide eyes how one of those people took out some weird looking veils and went around them, distributing a vial to each of them. She actually hid somewhat behind Lexa when the person approached the both of them, not reaching out to take the offered vial and pressing herself even closer to Lexa.

Lexa’s brows furrowed slightly at the girl’s overly fearful reaction, but she did not make any comment, allowing the girl to be as close to her as she wished without making physical contact herself. She took both of the offered vials mutely and the man wearing the diving suit stepped back from them again.

“Here” Lexa said in a soft tone, handing one of the vials over to Marie who eyed it visibly suspicious.

Clarke was eyeing the vial suspiciously as well, while Gustus lowly conversed with one of the Boat People, giving instructions for the care of their horses. It was rare for the Boat People to house horses as well, but the commander’s personal horse was too precious to just leave it behind unattended.

“What is this?” Clarke asked, scrutinizing the vial and taking a closer look at its content as if just looking at it would tell her of what it was composed and what it would do.

“You drink it and you can have the passage” one of the people disguised by a diver suit spoke up.

“You do not drink it and you stay behind” another added from the side.

Marie frowned at the vial as her confusion had only grown after this weird declaration.

“Just drink it” Lexa addressed the girl in a low tone “Do not think about it, down it in one go”. She watched over the girl, holding her gaze, until Marie shrugged a long moment later and obeyed her command.

She waited with drinking her own vial for a moment, wanting to catch Marie before the girl could fall and hit her head. Watching the girl suddenly drop was more painful than she could have ever imagined and the slight flash of panic passing through her grey eyes certainly did not make it any easier and her heart beat frantically for a long moment within her chest, until she had convinced her irrational worry that the girl was just unconscious because of the tonic within the vial and nothing else. She downed the vial in one go as well and blackness soon engulfed her senses.

~ ~ ~

When Marie woke up again, she did so being utterly confused. Her mind was slightly fuzzy and she took a moment to remember what had happened before everything had suddenly turned black.

She needed another moment to notice that she was not lying on the ground or in a bed, but rather in Anya’s arms. She blinked a few times at the woman, trying to clear her blurred view and she just noticed now that someone seemed to talk around her, although she could not yet understand the words.

“Should she not have woken up already?” Lexa turned around slightly, interrupting her talk with Luna for a moment to glance back at Marie worriedly.

Luna’s dark brown eyes followed the commander’s gaze knowingly, it had been obvious that the brunette cared for the girl, but it seemed that this care had most definitely evolved into a deep sense of love. “The dosage will have been slightly too high for her smaller built” she explained in a calm tone. She knew that the tonic would not have any adverse effects if it was overdosed, it would only take longer to wear off.

Marie stretched the slightest bit, mind still a little fuzzy, but more to being awake again.

Anya noticed the girl’s movement and immediately helped her into a sitting position. Although they had rapidly been assured that Marie would wake without any problems to be expected, her mind had been uneasy with the mere possibility of something else happening. She knew now that she did not hate anything else as deeply as feeling Marie’s body unnaturally lax within her arms and she hoped to not have to feel the same again any time soon.

Marie blinked a few more times until her vision finally cleared and she gave the general a slightly soft smile, before she looked around and shrank slightly back against her side. She had not expected to be surrounded by just so many people.

Tentatively, Marie looked around again and she frowned a little when she had no idea just where they might be. What she could see around them all seemed to consist of some metal or another and it reminded her weirdly of the Ark, but also not. On the Ark, every surface had been polished and clean and a metallic smell had been constantly around them and here she could immediately see several places of the metals being corroded by rust and the metals all seemed to have various colours and the smell was also entirely different. Was this the smell of the ocean Anya had eluded to earlier?

Marie could spot a variety of different people and she had never seen such a mixture of people either. Old and young, physically abled and she could also spot someone missing an arm. The clothes also seemed to rather be a mixture out of clothes specific for other clans and she wondered absentmindedly if the Boat People did not make their own clothing.

Her gaze stopped at Luna though, she easily recognized the red-haired leader from their meeting in Polis during the festival and she also recognized how the woman had the same eyes Boo had. She gave the woman a fleeting smile, but her attention was diverted from her, when Lexa offered a hand to her, pulling her to her feet quickly.

“Are you feeling well?” Lexa asked worriedly in a low tone, stepping closer to the girl and inspecting her over quickly.

Marie nodded in mute agreement, being a little intimidated by being surrounded by so many strangers who all seemed to watch her. She smiled slightly when Lexa gave her hand a soft squeeze.

“We can open dinner officially then” Luna exclaimed rather loudly and Marie watched with a slight frown how this seemed to have been some sot of command she did not understand as most of the strangers stood up and moved out of the huge room.

Marie did not let go yet of Lexa’s hand while they followed the large group of strangers. She had been correct and everything around them seemed to be of some sort of metal. Her mouth hung open slightly when they stepped out of the room and suddenly were outside. Her grey eyes widened when she noticed that they seemed to be standing on some weird sort of metal island and she could see the ocean stretch out around them on all sides. She thought to distinctly be able to make out the mainland on one side, but she was not entirely sure either.

Clarke wore a just as nonplussed expression, never having been here before either “What has this been before the old world ended?” she asked out loud, directing the question at Luna.

Marie gazed back over her shoulder slightly, wanting to hear the answer as well.

“This was an oil rig” Luna easily answered. None of their people actually knew any longer just how the machines to pump up the oil worked, but the pure name had been noted down somewhere.

Marie frowned, she actually had no idea what an oil rig actually was, but she did not feel courageous enough to ask either.

They followed the strangers into what could pass as another sort of building and Marie easily recognized that this huge room must serve as a dining hall and it was lined with several long tables. Most of which were already taken by other people and Marie wondered if there were even enough places to sit for everyone, but somehow it seemed to fit.

Food had also already been pilled on a variety of plates on the long tables and Marie’s grey eyes widened at the sheer variety of the offers. She could not even recognize half of what was on offer though and she recognized that quiet a lot seemed to be some seafood or another.

She let herself be guided to one table by Lexa and sat down between the commander and Anya at her other side. Clarke, Gustus and Hera sat at the same table, but Luna sat on Lexa’s other side.

Marie watched with interest how a girl approached the red-haired leader, sitting down on the only left free chair next to her and giving the woman a big smile. She scrutinized the girl slightly, could this be the sister Boo had mentioned? She was not entirely sure but she guessed that she could find out during the next days. Boo had often mentioned his sister, missing her and clearly wanting to know how the older girl was doing and Marie would happily tell him whatever she could learn once they returned to Polis.

She had expected some sort of formal speech to be held now in honour of the commander visiting the Boat People, but to her mute confusion Luna only shortly acknowledged their presence and immediately afterwards proclaimed that the dinner was now officially open and all people began to tuck in.

Anya and Lexa readily explained to her what specialities where all on offer. She had already eaten some kind of fish in Polis, but obviously nothing what was being served here.

Anya seemed adamant about the fact that she should try a weird sort of huge crab.

Marie watched in rapt fascination how the general worked on the nippers of the animals, breaking them open and revealing a tiny amount of edible flesh hidden inside.

She cautiously accepted some of the flesh and took a small bite, careful at the unused taste.

Anya and Lexa were both watching here intently and with slight smiles.

Marie chewed carefully, swallowing down the first bite “It tastes weird” she commented with a little frown, before she gingerly took another bite. She continued to chew, but her frown deepened when it felt as if her tongue was somehow weird. With great difficulties, she spit out the bite again and her grey eyes widened when she felt that her tongue felt tingly and weird, just as her lips and she looked between Lexa and Anya in fright at what was happening now.

Lexa and Anya both appeared shocked, never having seen such a physical reaction to the mere consumption of a lobster. Anya had eaten some of the meat as well and had no problems, so it could not have been tempered with either.

“Marie, it is going to be alright, little star” Lexa exclaimed in worry, turning to her side and holding the girl’s hands down as she was grasping for her throat.

“What is happening to her?” Anya questioned with widened brown eyes, turning to Luna.

Clarke had noticed the uproar as well, while Anya tried to fervently ask Luna on what to do, but the red-haired leader seemed rather perplexed as well.

Clarke stood from her chair and she immediately recognized what must be the problem, Marie was showing symptoms of an allergic reaction, probably to the lobster she had just eaten. She tried to think of something to sooth the allergic reaction. All which immediately came to her mind was honey and she fortunately still had her bag with her, which also contained a pot with honey. She kneeled down in front of Marie, taking a spook and getting some honey on it “Try to suck it from the spoon, Marie” she advised, hoping that the honey would be strong enough. If the girl’s trachea would swell, they would be facing a rather huge problem.

Lexa kept on holding one of Marie’s hands, whispering reassuring words to the girl and she waited with an almost baited breath for the honey to take some effect.

When it finally did and Marie’s grey eyes looked calmer again as well, Clarke gave the girl another spoon of honey just to be sure and gave her the strict instruction not to eat any kind of shellfish.

Lexa and Anya bandied a glance over Marie’s head, both wondering internally when the scares with the child would stop.

 

Chapter 257

For the rest of the dinner, Marie stayed firmly away from shellfish, although she actually required Luna to point out to her which she should not eat. She was too unfamiliar with all these variants of fish, that she actually had not idea what they all were. For quiet a few of them, she actually did also not wish to find out what the living animal could have looked like. Some truly looked weird and even disgusting slightly, but all the others were obviously happy enough with the broad variety of food which was offered to them now.

Marie internally wondered if dinner always looked like this here. The people around them obviously mostly knew each other and she could hear an easy kind of talk going around all the tables, interrupted in places by the bright laughter of other children. She had of course seen children in TonDC before and in Polis, too, but somehow it seemed that more children lived here. She remembered the banquets which she had attended so far and all of them had offered this kind of huge variations of food as well, but she guessed that she would see soon enough during the next days if dinner was usually a simpler affair around here.

As diner continued, Marie noticed how her nose had gotten sort of stuffy, although she had not felt sick before anymore and to her great chagrin, the skin around her mouth began to feel tingly and itchy. Her lips, which had been coated by the honey, were feeling better already though.

She began rubbing at her face a few minutes later, but it only seemed to increase the itch.

When Lexa noticed that Marie continued to rub around her mouth and how discontent the girl appeared to be, she pulled the girl’s hands away from her face with gentle force. A frown appeared on her own features, as she noticed how red the skin around Marie’s mouth looked like and if she was not mistaken, she could make out small blisters there too.

The commander turned to Clarke with questioning eyes, not wanting to panic yet again, but internally already doing exactly that.

Clarke looked around Lexa at Marie “It is part of the allergic reaction” she immediately said, standing up again and taking the honey back up to distributed a slight layer of it around Marie’s mouth. It would sooth the itching and help the hives to decrease a little quicker “Your nose is stuffed, too, right?” she checked, noticing how Marie seemed to snuffle a little after each breath.

Marie nodded her head in agreement, a small pout on her features, clearly not satisfied at feeling sick yet again.

“It’s also a part of the allergic reaction to shellfish. If you don’t eat any shellfish again, it should be back to normal together. You should not be in a kitchen where the food is prepared though” Clarke explained in a calm tone, with a small smile on her features. It was almost comical to watch the definite relief pass over Anya’s and Lexa’s features at the news that this was relatively harmless and would pass on its own without any complications.

Marie let her tongue dart out, trying to lick up as much of the sweet honey as possible.

Anya frowned at her “Stop that” she chided the girl “The honey is supposed to sooth the itch and not for you to eat” she added with a slightly strict tone, narrowing her eyes at the girl.

Marie gave the general her best innocent look “But it’s soooooo tasty” she exclaimed with a sweet smile.

Anya snorted under her breath at the girl’s feeble attempts at manipulation, but let it pass for now.

~ ~ ~

After dinner, Luna personally showed them to their accommodations and Marie was thrilled to no end to learn that she would once again be sharing a room with Lexa and Anya. She did not know that Lexa had been offered a room of her own before, while she still had been knocked out by the sedative, but had declined it, asking for one to share with her general and second instead.

The room they were shown to, was big, not nearly as big as the commander’s quarters within the tower though. But Marie only had eyes for the side scuttle in one of the walls, making it possible to see the ocean around them from the bed. She immediately knelt on the bed in front of the side scuttle, looking out eagerly and turning back to look over her shoulder at Lexa and Anya, motioning them closer enthusiastically.

“Look, there’s a seagull” she pointed out, voice bright with enthusiasm and grey eyes shining with utter joy, jumping about in front of the side scuttle in a way that it was actually entirely impossible for anyone else to look out of it.

Lexa climbed onto the bed behind the girl, winding an arm around her and by thus stopping her almost nervous fidgeting as she pulled the girl back slightly against her own body.

Marie frowned for the fraction of a second at being pulled back like that, but she almost melted against the commander’s body, soaking up the warmth the embrace offered like a dried sponge. Her attention was turned back to the side scull as another sea gull flew by it, much closer than the last one and the animal let out a shrill shriek.

“They sound weird” Marie pointed out with a giggle, glancing up slightly at Lexa with an utterly peaceful expression. Her gaze returned back to the ocean and she placed her own arms over Lexa’s and she just enjoyed the view of the soft waves, breathing in the salty air and feeling the hint of a breeze being carried into the room. She could not remember feeling this at peace in a long time now and after a few moments of utter silence, Marie breathed out “Can we stay here?” in a dreamy tone.

Lexa sighed slightly under her breath. She could understand that Marie would enjoy it here, but staying with the Boat People permanently would not be possible for her. She could certainly allow Anya and Marie to remain behind, if the child would truly wish so. She would leave them behind with a bleeding heart, but she could potentially do so. But she was the commander and she was needed in Polis. Even if she expected her duties to slowly shrink, now that there would be peace. She knew just how fickle peace could be and it could change at any moment and even if they would manage to uphold a lasting peace, the commander’s place would forever be in Polis. She would hopefully have more opportunities to travel through the clans, but she would always have to return to the capitol and her rightful place. She also highly doubted that Marie would truly prefer to stay here with only Anya. She knew that the girl loved her too deeply to wish for such a separation as well.

Anya threw a quick glance at Luna, who still had not left, feeling slightly uncomfortable with the other woman’s presence in this private and intimate moment. Although she may not agree with Titus that Luna was a threat to Lexa as the commander, she had never had a deep liking for the nightblood girl.

The leader of the Boat People was standing in the middle of the room and her arms which had formerly been crossed over her chest, had loosened again and her defensive expression had dropped as well, to be replaced with a contemplative one. “You are truly close” she exclaimed after a moment, breaking the peaceful atmosphere of the room.

Shock momentarily flitted over Marie’s features, she had not been aware of the fact that the woman was still present in the room as well and she remembered her odd behaviour at the banquet and although she liked Boo, she did not feel entirely comfortable in her presence just yet.

Lexa remained in the position she was, she was not planning on hiding the deep connection between her and Marie any longer. She wanted to claim the girl officially as her daughter as well and she would force the ceremony to pass if she had to. Marie was red-blooded, so she would not be able to interfere with the succession of the flame and Lexa saw no logical reason any longer why she could not make their bond official. It may only be a formality at this point, as she already felt for the girl as she would for own child, but it still would be significant to both of them.

Luna frowned the slightest bit at the almost challenging glint within Lexa’s green eyes, while Marie seemed rather uncomfortable within the whole situation, fidgeting in place again.

“Yes, she is my daughter in all but blood” Lexa retorted finally after a tense moment of silence, tightening her arms around the girl’s smaller body and glancing down at the child for a second with a loving expression at the clear wonder within Marie’s grey eyes.

Luna inclined her head in mute acknowledgement and when the girl visibly tried to supress a jaw, she took her leave, wishing them a peaceful stay with the Boat People.

Marie watched the woman sweep out of the room and when she had heard her steps falling silent outside in the hall, she turned to Lexa and Anya again “She is weird…” she remarked with a slight frown.

Anya barked out a bout of laughter “That she surely is” she agreed, brown eyes twinkling, as she stepped closer to Marie and playfully ruffled the girl’s hair.

Marie squealed slightly in protest, trying to wiggle out of Lexa’s arms and away from Anya’s hands, but once both women bandied a gaze, they moved their hands at the same time, attacking the girl’s sides with soft tickles and soon Marie’s shrill giggling laughter resonated through the room.

It continued like that until Marie ran out of breath, gasping for mercy, while happy tears of laughter leaked from her eyes. She held her hands to her sides, trying to regain her breathing, but the smile on her face remained with a blinding intensity.

Both Lexa and Anya had not thought to ever see the child this happy again and they were connected in their enjoyment of this little moment of peace, hoping that they would be able to offer Marie many more of them as time continued.

“Do you want to sleep now, little star?” Lexa asked in a soft tone, once it seemed that Marie was slowly beginning to breathe normally again.

Marie immediately shook her head with a slight pout on her lips “I am not tired, like at all” she exclaimed, seemingly almost affronted at the concept of having to sleep now and she even crossed her arms over her chest for emphasis.

Anya raised a brow critically at the girl’s antics. She had been sure to never be able to observe the girl this lively and content again and she could not find it in her heart to actually be annoyed at the girl talking back to them at all. A slight frown settled onto her features when she realized her own train of thought, the girl had turned her soft and she could not really pinpoint just when this had happened, neither if she truly cared anymore about the change.

“What do you want to do instead?” Lexa asked in a calm tone, amusement danced through her green eyes and a slight smile tilted the corners of her lips upwards.

Marie’s expression turned contemplative for a moment and she tilted her head to the side, deep in thought, until something flashed through her grey eyes and she enthusiastically proclaimed “Swimming!”

“It is too late to go for a swim now, Marie” Lexa reasoned with the girl and when the child’s joyed expression fell clearly, she tried to appease her “I can continue to read to you now instead”.

Marie seemed to consider the offer for a moment “But we’ll go swimming tomorrow, right?” she checked. Walking through the water had not been swimming after all and she could not wait to truly swim. Her expression turned into a slight frown when she remembered her last more or less successful attempt at swimming, she did not wish to drown after all.

“We will” Lexa reassured the girl kindly and motioned Marie to sit down with her on the bed, probed up against the headboard “and we will teach you properly on how to swim” she added; the flash of worry within Marie’s grey eyes had not passed unnoticed by her after all.

Marie smiled at the commander, nodding her head and cuddling up to the woman in her probably most loved position, getting comfortable to listen to Lexa read the story out loud further.

Anya busied herself with unpacking some of their things and she only half-heartedly listened to Lexa’s melodic voice resonating through the room.

Once she had finished unpacking and turned back to the bed, amusement settled onto her features “She was clearly not tired at all” Anya commented with a slight smirk.

Marie had fallen asleep in Lexa’s arms and they both knew that the girl would probably continue to sleep for some time now. They did not yet know if Marie’s nightmares might begin to recede as well, now that the stress of being terminally ill was removed and they would have some time to just relax with the child.

~ ~ ~

The night had passed peacefully between them and to Anya’s and Lexa’s great internal relief, Marie had not once been woken from a nightmare. They knew that it was too soon to assume that the girl was free of them from now on, but it gave both of them hope that Marie was improving mentally as well.

Marie was actually the first one to wake up, already giddy with the prospect of finally swimming in the ocean as soon as there was even the faintest hint of the sun beginning to rise.

She looked around the still rather dim room with a frown, noticing that Lexa and Anya beside her were still asleep. While she had obviously slept within Anya’s arms, one of Lexa’s still rested on her side.

She tried closing her eyes again, hoping to fall back asleep, but it was utterly impossible and even lying still was hard. Marie wanted to get up and she wanted to get up now. She felt as if she was buzzing with energy and she was sure that there was so much to see around her, even beside the prospect of swimming in the sea. Lexa had mentioned that they could also make a short trip with a boat or try to fish as well and she could barely wait to do it all at once. She did not know if she would be allowed to roam around here alone, just like she had the permission to do so in the tower in Polis and she doubted that just leaving the room without telling either of them would be such a good idea either. So, she reclined herself to wait, hoping internally to somehow be able to make the time pass faster.

When Anya and Lexa still had not made a single move long moments later, Marie huffed in a bout of frustration. She was usually never the one to wake up first and she wanted them to wake up now as well.

Lexa sighed slightly at Marie’s huff; her mind had registered the sound but she was not fully awake just yet, dismissing it as a part of her dream.

Marie frowned at the almost inaudible sigh and she almost whined out “Lexa…are you awake?” looking at the commander’s sleeping features expectantly.

Lexa needed another short moment to open her eyes, her mind had not been able to dismiss the girl’s words, which had not even been spoken this softly either and she was immediately greeted with Marie’s shining grey eyes.

“You’re awake!” Marie assessed with a smile; voice slightly too high from giddiness and already wiggling out of Anya’s arms, expecting to be able to get out of bed now.

 “Obviously” Lexa commented a little drily, stretching herself under the blankets for a moment. It was obvious on first glance that trying to get Marie to continue to sleep would be utterly useless, the girl almost appeared like a nervous ball of excess energy right now and she internally rejoiced at being able to observe the child like this.

Her gaze shortly fell on the side gull and she sat up, motioning Marie to do the same. The sunrise was beautiful to watch around here and they had woken up early enough to get the full view.

“Look at the sky, little star” Lexa instructed softly, while Anya had only grunted under her breath at the movement on the mattress, turning over in her sleep and obviously refusing to stand up just yet.

Marie frowned first at the seemingly off-hand command, she wanted to get out of bed after all and not watch the sky right now, but her mouth formed a shape of wonder when she actually obeyed the order and she felt Lexa’s arms settle around her in a warming embrace once again.

The sky was tinted in the most beautiful hues of reds and oranges she had ever seen. Little fluffy clouds seemed clattered around the rising sun, being tinted in a hint of pink. The orange glowing sun was reflected strongly on the glistening surface of the ocean and Marie could not tear her gaze from the captivating view. Now that she thought about it, since their landing on earth all this months ago, she had never actually had the opportunity to just sit somewhere and watch the pure beauty of the sun rising or setting.

“It is so beautiful” Marie breathed out in a dreamy tone, bending her head slightly to glance up at the commander.

Lexa mutely inclined her head, smoothing down some of the child’s blonde locks. She rarely took the time to just sit and enjoy a sight like this, her busy schedule rarely allowed her to do so anyway, but she was grateful to be able to show Marie the quiet and beautiful moments too. The girl should experience everything there was, making her life the fullest possible and they would both live to make this come true.

 

 

Chapter 258

“Are you hungry yet, little star?” Lexa addressed the girl, once the sun had moved visibly on the horizon, tightening her arms slightly around the girl’s smaller body.

Marie nodded her head in agreement and her tummy gave a little growl in agreement as well. She frowned in Anya’s direction, who was still sleeping.

“Why don’t you wake her up?” Lexa suggested with a slight gleam within her green eyes “We would not want her to miss breakfast now, would we?”

Marie giggled slightly and as soon as Lexa’s arms had loosened around herself, she almost jumped at Anya, trying to tickle the general.

To her chagrin, the woman quickly turned the tide around.

“I’ll give up…” Marie gasped out, trying to wiggle away from Anya’s hands.

But the general had no mercy yet with the girl and continued to tickle her, until the child actually began to cough, utterly breathless.

Anya let go of Marie immediately, brown eyes widening a little in worry when the girl did not stop coughing after a moment. She climbed to her knees, gently clasping the girl on her back, hoping to make her breath a little easier again. “Breath, Marie” she addressed the girl, letting her hand now rub soothingly over the child’s back.

“You’re mean” Marie gasped out, once she had gotten her breath back at least a little and a frown rested on her features, slight accusation clouded her grey eyes.

Anya raised a brow critically at the girl “You intended to wake me up, what did you expect?” she questioned, tone slightly snarky.

Marie pouted at the general, looking over to Lexa who had watched the scene play out with amusement dancing through her green eyes and the commander had outstretched a hand towards her, offering to pull her from the bed.

Marie grasped onto the woman’s hand and threw a glance over her shoulder at Anya who only rolled her eyes at her.

“Can we go swimming now?” she asked, grey eyes enthusiastic again, once she stood beside Lexa.

Lexa shook her head with a slight smile tilting the corners of her lips upwards “Breakfast first” she answered, giving the girl a slight push in the direction of the door.

~ ~ ~

It turned out that breakfast was eaten in the same big room where they had yesterday already dined together. The collection of food on offer was much smaller than during their dinner though, so Marie gathered that the Boat People had made this grander dinner solely for their sakes. She wondered for a moment just how the people here could have known when they would have arrived. No additional guards had travelled with them, so no one had been sent ahead to announce their impending arrival and Marie was relatively certain that the journey could have passed much sooner if Lexa had not decided for them to only travel through half of the daytime.

She did not think of actually formulating the obvious question though, as her attention was diverted when Lexa pushed her to sit down at one of the tables and her gaze fell on the other girl sitting there. It was the girl Marie had already seen sitting next to Luna last night during dinner and she strongly guessed it to be Boo’s older sister. Unfortunately, she had forgotten the name Boo who had used for his sister, so Marie was unsure on how to address the other girl.

With a little burst of courage, Marie took up the empty chair next to the unknown girl. Luna was nowhere to be seen at the moment, so the girl had been sitting alone and the room was still rather empty, or actually empty again as most other people already had finished with their breakfast.

Lexa watched the girl move over another few chairs with a slight frown, but she did not comment on it. If Marie wanted to get in contact with other children, she would surely not hinder her in it. She knew, that the girl mostly had contact with herself and Anya and Ontari. Marie had not really shown any interest any more in getting to know other people, so it was good that she obviously was intending to get acquittanced with others again.

She watched Marie from the corner of her eyes. Although the girl had sat down directly next to Luna’s daughter, Marie had not said a single thing to her yet and she seemed slightly fidgety in her seat, as if she wanted to mutely catch the other girl’s attention.

Anya sat down on Lexa’s other side a few moments later; she had needed a moment longer to get dressed and leave their sleeping quarters.

The general looked over at Marie, watching the girl’s not so subtle behaviour with a slight frown “What is that about?” she murmured to Lexa, too low for the blonde girl to catch anything from what was said; Marie’s attention seemed to be solely focused on the other girl anyway.

Lexa’s lips tilted upwards into a slight smile “Isn’t that obvious?” she whispered back without even turning her eyes in the general’s direction.

“Adria” a voice from behind them called out and the girl sitting next to Marie immediately turned her head, a small smile brightened her features when she met Luna’s gaze.

“Come” Luna said to the girl, nodding mutely towards Lexa as they passed by the commander.

Marie huffed under her breath when the other girl was out of sight, clearly frustrated with having lost her chances at making contact.

“Why have you not just spoken to her?” Lexa asked the girl in a soft tone, trying to keep her amusement at Marie’s suddenly shy antics at bay “She would have surely not bitten you”.

Marie narrowed her eyes at the commander, lower lip protruding in a small pout, but she kept silent.

Anya shook her head at the girl with a slight snort of disbelief. She could not remember that the girl had been shy before in approaching others her own age.

After a long moment, Marie’s attitude dropped visibly “Was that Boo’s sister?” she asked as her curiosity had won out on her.

Lexa inclined her head in confirmation “Her name is Adria as far as I remember” she added the information, hoping that Marie would be more inclined to actually approach the girl if she already knew her name.

Marie’s head tilted slightly to the side and an expression of utter concentration took over her features as she forcefully tried to remember if that was the name Boo had used or not, but all she achieved was getting a slight headache.

Marie was careful during breakfast to keep her hands of any food which she was not able to recognize, too afraid to cause another allergic reaction. The hives around her mouth had not completely vanished yet and she surely did not want them to increase even more.

She looked up from her plate again, when she saw someone coming to stand directly in front of her on the other side of the table. Clarke was standing there with a kind smile on her features.

“How do you feel?” Clarke asked the younger blonde girl, while her blue eyes quickly scanned over Marie, trying to spot signs that anything was not alright at the moment.

Marie shrugged her shoulders slightly as an answer, she was not feeling anything bad except the light headache which had remained and the hives itched a little bit, but it was bearable.

Anya pursed her lips at the girl, she utterly hated it when Marie shrugged her shoulders instead of giving a real verbal answer, if she was sitting directly next to the child, she would have given her side a slight pinch to remind her of that fact immediately.

As if Marie could feel the weight of the general’s disparaging glare resting on her shoulders, she turned slightly, glancing over at the woman momentarily. A slight blush dusted over her cheeks for a moment “I just have a very small headache, nothing else” she finally answered honestly. She had definitely felt much worse during the last weeks and this headache was nothing in comparison. It was really reliving to finally be able to eat normally once again without having to drink the vile tea – no matter how much honey was added it just still had a bitter aftertaste lingering in her mouth – and not being sick afterwards.

Clarke nodded in acknowledgement “Nothing feels swollen around your mouth and your throat feels also fine?” she questioned; she had worried a little that the honey might not have been strong enough to alleviate the symptoms of the child’s allergy and she knew that stronger allergies could actually end up deadly if the airways swelled shut.

Marie shook her head in the negative, she had not felt anything extraordinary there and she guessed that she had only coughed before because Anya had not let up on tickling her.

Clarke nodded again, she highly doubted that she would need to give Marie something against the headache just yet “Tell me if the headache gets worse, I can give you something to help with the pain then” she offered nonetheless and waited for Marie to signal that she understood. Her own smile turned a little forced when her gaze travelled over to Lexa, she still did not know exactly how she should tread around the commander. She felt sad that whatever had been between them was obviously not going to rekindle and she guessed that this sadness would linger for some time. A breakup was never easy after all and as long as they stayed here, they would also continue to see each other on a daily basis.

Lexa watched the healer go with a slight frown. During the last days her mind had almost completely been focused on Marie, there simply had not been time to contemplate what had transpired between her and Clarke. It sat heavily in her stomach that whatever had been between them, would never be again.

“Can we go swimming now, Mommy?” Marie addressed the commander, keeping her last word at a whisper – or at least what Marie perceived as a whisper – pulling the brunette out of her thoughts.

A slight smile rested on Lexa’s features and she forcefully banned all further contemplation regarding Clarke from her mind. She felt her heart warm at seeing the lifelines within Marie’s grey eyes, it was obvious how thrilled the child was of the prospect of the ocean. She let her glance wander around the room and her eyes narrowed when she noticed the almost disbelieving eyes of several people resting on her.

Marie seemed utterly oblivious to the sudden tension rising within Lexa’s body and she let out a clear exclamation of joy “Yay! Let’s go, let’s go, let’s go!” she chanted impatiently, standing from her chair quickly and fidgeting between Anya and Lexa.

Anya gave the girl a critical non-impressed stare, one brow raised and lips pressed into a thin line, trying to fight off the smirk wanting to take hold of them instead. The girl definitely needed to learn patience.

Lexa shook her head slightly in amusement at the girl’s childish antics, she was surprised that the expressions on the faces of those who seemed to watch her every move had turned definitely benevolent now. She was so used to having to hide the true depths of her connection to the child that Lexa found it weird that these people obviously did not seem to think any less of her, she could not detect any negative judgement within their eyes at least and after the slightest pause and hesitation, she finally took pity on the girl’s clear impatience, standing up as well and grasping onto one of her hands, leading her out of the room.

“You should have let her wait for a few moments” Anya commented in a grumble, clearly not satisfied that Lexa had given in so quickly “She will never learn patience that way” she added critically.

Marie pouted slightly at the general, a sheepish expression on her features otherwise “I am just so excited…” she tried to justify her impatience at finally being submerged into the ocean.

“It is alright, little star” Lexa gave the girl’s hand a reassuring squeeze, sending Anya a disparaging brief glare of her own. The girl had nearly died what felt like only a few hours ago and the pain of nearly losing her forever was still fresh and all-encompassing within her mind, so, if the child wanted to swim, she would and Lexa would not reprimand her for her impatience.

Marie smiled softly at Lexa, walking a little closer to the commander, feeling her warmth and comforting scent invade her senses.

Lexa’s expression was gentle on their way back to their sleeping quarters, heading there to gather a change of clothes. The girl’s position, latched on one of her arms, made walking rather weird, but she would not deprive her daughter of even a second of physical closeness if she wished to have it either.

~ ~ ~

It took them only a few moments to gather a set of clothes and a few towels. Marie was giddily waiting for Lexa and Anya, but to her utter chagrin, Lexa commanded her to disrobe in their room, having some sort of pot in hand, which Marie had not seen before.

Marie narrowed her eyes at the pot “What is in there?” she asked suspiciously.

“Something to protect your skin from the sun” Lexa answered in a calm tone. The girl’s skin was still rather fair and she did not want her to burn her skin by being exposed to the stronger sun for too long, she knew that this would only hurt the girl later.

Marie frowned questioningly “Protect my skin?” she echoed.

“The sun is stronger here” Anya easily chimed in, giving the girl a non-plussed look. She would opt to let the child out unprotected if she truly did not want to have it applied, she would learn the hard way then that what they proposed made sense and was intended to protect her from further harm.

“Can’t we apply it later?” Marie asked impatiently, upper body already turning in the direction of the door to exit the room again.

Anya’s lips thinned with a deep exhale, but she kept silent, knowing all too well now that Lexa would wish to handle the situation a little gentler than her approach would have been.

“Believe me, Marie, you do not want to acquire a sunburn” Lexa said a little firmer. She had actually been similar to how Marie acted now and Anya had let her out without any protection against the sun and she still remembered the uncomfortable feeling of having her skin blistered in all areas which were normally covered by clothes. She did not wish for Marie to have to go through that too if she could easily prevent that.

Marie huffed in definite impatience, but relented under the commander’s heavy gaze and quickly stripped out of her clothes, stepping closer to the woman and waiting impatiently when Lexa began to distribute the unknown cream on her skin.

“Can you just stand still for a second, Marie?” Lexa questioned with a mixture of amusement and a hint of annoyance. The girl was fidgeting strongly beneath her hands and she would surely get this done quicker, if Marie just stood still.

Marie pouted visibly “I can’t…” she exclaimed in utter excitement.

Anya watched the girl with a roll of her eyes, she had already stripped out of most of her clothes too, leaving her in her underwear only.

“Are we finished now?” Marie asked after another moment, voice noticeably whiny. She slowly suspected that Lexa and Anya were making her wait on purpose now.

“We are” Lexa finally agreed with a soft smile. She only needed to undress from some of her clothes too, which only took another short moment.

“Yay!” Marie exclaimed again with a bright glowing smile and shining grey eyes. The girl had a spring to her steps, walking between Lexa and Anya out of the room.

It was obvious that Marie felt slightly uncomfortable with walking around naked and her enthusiasm dimmed visible, when she noticed that others quickly noticed them and she almost seemed to try to hide between Lexa and Anya now.

Lexa only let one of her arms rest over the girl’s smaller body in silent support. She knew that no one would dare to approach them anyway.

They led the girl to one of the lower levels, from which a small platform floated directly in the ocean, making it easy to climb in and out.

Marie’s eyes widened visibly when they stepped from the ladder and onto the floating platform. She grasped onto Lexa’s and Anya’s hands with a squeal, being unnerved immediately by the movement of the surface beneath her feet.

Anya smirked slightly at the girl “You will not fall” she reassured the girl. She had been here often enough to know that as long as the ocean was as calm as it was now, there was no danger here. But even the Boat People were wary of the sea when there were storms, choosing to hide in the upper levels of their iron dwelling.

“You sure?” Marie questioned in a slightly panicked tone. Her expression turned even more frightened when a slightly bigger wave really moved the platform beneath their feet and she let out another squeal, holding onto their hands tighter.

“You will need to let go to actually swim” Anya commented in a dry tone. The girl would see quick enough that this was nothing to be afraid of.

Lexa gently pried the girl’s fingers from her hand, giving her a reassuring look “Nothing will happen, little star, you are safe here and we will not let you drown” she promised with a smile.

Marie nodded with a clearly troubled expression. The water did look pretty different now and definitely not as safe as it had back on the shore. She held on to Anya’s hand tightly, letting herself be guided closer to the edge with tiny little steps. She peered over the edge and felt her stomach clench. She had been able to see the ground back at the shore, but here she could not see it any longer. She knew that she was not able to swim really well and all she could see around them beside this floating thing they were standing on, was water. There was water everywhere.

“I don’t wanna swim any more…” she breathed out in a whiny tone, grasping back onto Lexa’s arm as well and immediately holding on for dear life.

Lexa sighed slightly under her breath, banding a short-worried glance with Anya. They had both hoped that Marie would just enjoy this experience, but the child was clearly still troubled by many fears and they would need to conquer them all one by one if they ever wanted  Marie to truly recover, but they were in this together and they would make sure their daughter could get better, not having to fear every shadow. Their love and gentle guidance would surely be enough, or Lexa hoped so at least.

 

 

Chapter 259

“Breathe, little star” Lexa said in a soft tone, trying to loosen the girl’s almost clawing grip around her arm, so that she could crouch down in front of Marie, blocking the girl’s view of the water surrounding them “There is nothing for you to fear” she tried to sooth her.

Marie’s grey eyes were big and wide as she looked at Lexa. She had been so giddy about getting into the deep ocean, that she could not really describe just why she was so afraid now at all. But it all seemed so overwhelming all of a sudden. The water was so deep and there was just nothing beside water all around them. From where they were standing, she could not even make out the shore any longer. In fact, she had absolutely no idea in which direction the shore was at all. She did not exactly think that Lexa and Anya would let her drown on purpose, but it suddenly felt too dangerous to leave this weirdly moving platform, even the movements below her feet was unsettling enough already. What if they fell into the water and failed to get back up? Her breathing was getting elevated against her will and she tried to get it back under control, but her chest constricted painfully with each breath she took.

“Breathe together with me” Lexa instructed, turning the girl around slightly, so that Marie’s body rested against hers.

Anya crouched down on Marie’s other side letting her hands rest on her back, signalling the girl that she was there with her as well.

It took a few moments, until Marie had visibly calmed down again and her vice-like grip on Lexa’s arm was finally letting up again.

A sheepish look settled on her features, but she let out a slight squeal when the platform moved a little stronger under the force of one of the strongest waves yet.

“Sshh” Lexa soothed the girl “You will not fall” she reassured Marie in a gentle tone. She got back to her feet slowly, holding out her hands for Marie to grasp and once the girl had done so with a hesitant expression, Lexa slowly walked them closer to the edge of the platform.

Marie visibly tensed once they stood at the edge of the platform, all she could see once again was water on all sides.

Lexa slowly sat down on the edge of the platform, letting her legs dangle over the edge and feeling the cold water around her limbs. She still kept hold on the girl’s hands, lightly pulling Marie towards herself. “Just sit down” she advised “You will not fall”.

Anya followed behind the two of them slowly; she briefly contemplated just pushing the girl into the water, but she decided against it. Their daughter appeared genuinely frightened of all the water around them and she did not want to worsen this, such tactics might have worked with Lexa before but Marie was clearly different in the way she learned and processed things.

She sat down beside Lexa, leaving enough room for Marie to decide if she wanted to sit down, too.

Lexa gently tugged at Marie’s hands, urging the child mutely to sit down, but giving the girl enough time to do so in her own time.

With slightly shaky legs, Marie finally let herself sink down, letting most of her weight rest on Lexa’s hands as she did so, but she kept her feet firmly on the platform still.

Anya smirked slightly at the girl’s still so visibly frightened antics “I will not push you in” she amended, brown eyes twinkling a little when Marie immediately glared at her.

Lexa let her legs move through the water visibly “There is really nothing for you to be afraid of” she assured the girl in a calm tone, while her green eyes looked gently at the child.

Marie sighed slightly under her breath, biting at her lips indecisively for a long moment, before she finally gathered her courage and let her feet dangle into the water too. She shrieked slightly in surprise at finding the water much colder than she had anticipated, pulling her feet back immediately. She let go of Lexa’s hands and wound her arms around her legs, pulling her knees towards her chest.

“It’s sooo cold” Marie exclaimed defensively when she noticed Anya’s amused expression.

Anya huffed out a slight laugh “This is not cold, Marie” she retorted, wondering again if pushing the girl into the water might still be a valid option.

“It is” Marie countered with a slight whine, looking to Lexa for backup.

The commander squeezed Marie’s hands once, before she let go of them, pushing herself over the edge and submerging quickly into the water. Lexa let the gravity submerge herself completely, before she swam back to the surface, brushing back a few wet locks from her face.

Marie had watched Lexa with big wide grey eyes, inhaling sharply once the woman had disappeared under the water and only breathing again, once Lexa had broken back through the surface. It did not seem at all as if Lexa found the water too cold to bear.

“Come on in, little star” Lexa summoned their daughter, swimming back closer to the edge and reaching upwards towards Marie.

Marie’s expression showed clearly how unsure she was about this, but in the end, she let herself be hoisted into the water by Lexa. She shivered strongly and out of pure instinct, Marie immediately wrapped her legs and arms around Lexa.

Lexa laughed out loud “Marie, you will not learn to swim like this”, but she nevertheless let one arm wound around Marie’s smaller body, while she kept of them above the water, paddling with her legs and the free arm.

Anya watched the scene for a few moments, while Lexa gently tried to encourage Marie to let go of her. She stood back up, undressing completely, before she took a header into the water, swimming a slight distance, before she swam a distance, turning back around and getting close to Lexa and Marie again. It was obvious that Lexa had not had much success yet at getting the blonde child to let go of her. The scene in itself looked rather cute, but she highly doubted that Marie was inclined to let go at all, the girl’s expression was too panicked for that at the moment.

Anya snorted under her breath; she would definitely have forced Marie to let go by now.

“Marie, we have not drowned yet and neither will you, when you let go” Lexa continued to try to reassure the clearly frightened child “I will not let you drown” she promised honestly.

“But what if…” Marie began to say, but let out a shrill scream, when they were both suddenly pulled under the water.

Anya had dived under the water again and pulled Lexa beneath the water with one quick motion and before the brunette knew what was happening, they had both been under water.

Lexa kicked out strongly once, freeing her leg quickly and breaking through the water surface with one quick swimming stroke.

Marie had let go of Lexa, once they were under the water surface, trying to regain her sense of direction. In the moment of shock, she was not utterly sure in which direction she needed to swim to get back upwards. She opened her eyes under the water and floated for a moment. It seemed even as time had slowed down and with rapt fascination, she watched a big fish with a beautifully coloured fin swim passed her. She did not even think about the fact that she needed to breathe, until her lungs began to burn. Not a single second later, did she feel two hands grab under her armpits and she was hoisted out of the deeper water and Marie gasped for air immediately, coughing slightly now that she was able to breathe again.

“Really, Anya, was that necessary?!” Lexa addressed the general in a biting tone, green eyes gleaming with silent anger.  She had pulled herself back onto the floating metal platform and had placed Marie back on it as well, while Anya just now climbed out of the water appearing totally unfazed, even slightly amused.

Marie sputtered for a bit more, coughing up a little sip of water, which she had inhaled moments ago.

Lexa gently clapped on the girl’s back until Marie breathed again, continuing to reassure the girl that she would be fine in a moment.

Before Lexa had the opportunity to actually say much more to Anya or make sure that Marie was truly alright, the laughter of other children resonated from the lower level above them and it took only another short moment for the first child – a blonde-haired boy – to break through to them and without any kind of hesitation, the child ran passed them at full speed, jumping into the water with an overjoyed squeal.

Marie’s breathing was still slightly elated, when the rest of the group of children reached the floating platform and the fear visibly left her grey eyes at seeing the other children have so much obvious fun as a few had immediately joined the first boy in the water and they had loudly begun to play around in the water.

“Do you want to join them?” Lexa asked in a gentle tone, letting one hand glide over the girl’s wet back, as her skin glistened under the sun.

Marie seemed contemplative for a moment. She wanted to join them, it was obvious that they were having fun and enjoying themselves. They were also all obviously to swim very well. But she knew, that she was not able to swim like that yet and she truly did not want to drown.

She finally shook her head, not wanting to show in front of the other children that she in fact could not really swim.

Lexa sighed under her breath, it was obvious that Marie had not based her decision on what she actually wanted, the girl’s slightly downtrodden expression was testament enough for that.

Anya sat down beside them casually “You just need a little practise, little star” she addressed the girl in a light tone, ignoring her slightly accusative glare for now and she pushed a wet lock of blonde hair from the girl’s face “Come on now, it is not that hard to learn to swim” she appeased their daughter with a kind expression. She quickly stood up and offered a hand to Marie.

Marie eyed the general’s hands suspiciously for a long silent moment “You are just gonna throw me in again or pull me under” she accused with a definite scowl.

Anya huffed under her breath “I will not, but you will never learn swimming out of the water” she answered honestly.

Marie took another moment, before she grasped onto Anya’s hand, letting herself be pulled back to her feet by the general. She was still rather hesitant to actually near the edge of the platform.

“Jump in” Anya ordered, letting go of Marie’s hand, once they had reached the edge and were looking down at the glistening water.

“No” Marie shook her head vehemently, taking a little step backwards and promptly colliding with Lexa, who had followed the both of them.

Lexa hands gently encircled Marie’s sides “It is alright, Marie, there is nothing to fear in the water and you will not drown” she repeated the words for what felt like the hundredths of times.

Anya shook her head slightly in annoyance, seeing that they were getting nowhere with Marie right now “I will just swim for a bit” she proclaimed, jumping back into the water quickly.

Lexa kept her arms around Marie, as she slowly sat down in her original position, legs dangling into the water and she pulled the girl down to sit on her lap.

Marie let her legs dangle into the water too, encased in Lexa’s embrace like that, the movements of the platform underneath them did not feel as threatening any longer. She could also now truly feel the sun beating down on them and the water was probably also not as cold, as it had originally felt. She leaned back fully against Lexa “Love you, Mommy” she whispered back, turning her head slightly so that the commander would surely catch her softly spoken words.

Lexa tightened her arms around the girl “Love you, too, little star” she retorted in a gentle tone. It felt almost alien to sit here like this, the children of the Boat People playing around them freely in the water, their laughter resonating through the air, mixed together with the soft waves and the gentle breeze, sometimes interrupted by a shrill shriek of a seagull flying past over their heads.

“It’s so beautiful here” Marie commented out of the blue, after a few minutes of them just sitting there.

“That is the beauty of peace” a voice commented suddenly from beside them, making Marie jump slightly within Lexa’s arms, craning her neck around to spot Luna peering down at them.

Marie frowned slightly, when she noticed that the leader of the Boat People was mostly undressed as well, the woman seemed to only be wearing underwear now. Her eyes widened a little when she noticed the deep scars distributed over Luna’s body.

Lexa remained utterly relaxed; she knew that she did not have to fear anything from her fellow nightblood sister now. She had already told her that her son had finally integrated well within the conclave and was doing better in Polis. She also explicitly offered that Luna could visit her son in Polis whenever she wanted. Lexa actually hoped that it would be possible for her to make journeys with the conclave as well.

It would not do forever to have the future commander solely trained in Polis. Now that the clans were rallied together under the flag of the coalition, she thought it important that whoever would succeed her, would also know all the clans they would rule over.

“Is that why the people come here?” Marie asked, surprising both women likewise that she had actually spoken up at all. She kept her body pressed closely to Lexa’s, but she met Luna’s gaze as steady as she could.

Luna sat down beside Lexa in one graceful motion “Certainly” she answered easily “My clan has always been the only refuge for true peace without the threat of another war. So, our children can play in the ocean instead of train all day” the last part was said with easily noticeable accusation.

Marie frowned visibly at the red-haired woman “I do not train all day” she retorted in a strong tone “Neither does Boo” she added after the flash of a second.

Luna’s eyebrows raised in clear surprise “You have gotten to my son then” she commented after a brief pause.

Marie nodded in agreement “I like him. He will be happy to hear that I saw you and his sister” she said almost more to herself.

As if summoned by her words, Adria appeared beside Luna “Let us start” the girl enthusiastically said, barely giving the commander more than a subtle nod.

Marie watched them with a slight frown, interested in what was going on. It turned out that Luna and her daughter made a sort of competition with the other children on who could swim the fastest and who was able to dive the deepest.

“Not training all day, for sure” Anya commented in a clearly sour affronted tone. She had been close enough to hear the red-haired woman’s words and she would probably never find a liking for the woman either.

“I wanna try now…” Marie proclaimed, clearly a little uncertain about her own decision. She held out her arms towards Anya mutely and her lips pressed into a thin line when the general immediately obliged and hoisted her from Lexa’s lap into the water with her.

Lexa pushed over the edge immediately too, gliding back into the water next to them.

Marie unsurely tried to get into the right position to swim, grey eyes darting back to the metal platform, clearly considering if getting back on it might not just be the better choice after all.

Anya put one hand beneath the girl’s stomach, making sure that she would not sink and could easily keep her head above the surface that way.

Lexa kept herself beside Anya and Marie and tried to tell the girl in a calm and soft tone on what to do. For the fact that Marie actually already possessed some swimming skills, the girl was definitely doing poorly.

It took Marie a rather long time – they had almost rounded the platform completely once – before Anya could remove her hand from beneath Marie’s stomach and the girl swam truly without support.

Marie’s face brightened up immediately with shining pride at not sinking or drowning immediately.

Lexa thought that the girl’s movements still were a little uncontrolled and she hoped that Marie was not already getting tired, but they had been outside for quiet some time already now, it would probably be time for lunch soon, if that had not already passed.

Both of them stayed near Marie, close enough to reach out on the first signs of the girl having trouble to keep above the water, but far enough away that Marie could truly practise her swimming technique.

“I can swim!” Marie proclaimed proudly long moments later. She still felt a little shaky though and her limbs were beginning to feel weirdly tired already.

Anya opened her mouth to clearly comment something sarcastic judging from the gleam within her brown eyes, but Lexa beat her to it “Yes, you can swim, we are proud of you little star”.

Marie smiled even brighter, swimming over fully to Lexa and winding her arms and legs back around the woman.

The commander let the girl be with a slight laugh, while Anya rolled her eyes in silence. To truly call Marie’s skill swimming, the girl would require more practise, but she would surely be able to get it during the next days. They had together decided that they would at least stay for a week, maybe even longer depending on Marie liked it here and if some urgent messages found their way to Lexa.

~ ~ ~

To Marie’s utter chagrin it seemed that the sun protection Lexa had applied to her skin before they had stepped outside, had not been strong enough.

After they had left the water, they had stayed for a few more moments outside in the sun, so that they could begin to get dried by it.

Lexa’s brows had furrowed into a frown, when she noticed the definite reddish tint to Marie’s skin. She took up a towel and gently dried off the girl’s skin and her frown deepened when she noticed that every touch turned the skin white, before it was red again. She sighed under breath, knowing already that Marie would surely not be very comfortable during the next two to three days and should not be out in the sun for too long either, to get her skin some time to heal.

“Why am I so red?” Marie asked, glancing down at the skin of her arms and she touched her own fingers to it. Bewilderment passed over her features at the sudden change of colour when pressure was applied.

“You have already gotten a sunburn” Lexa admitted honestly, feeling slight guilt flash through her mind. They should have returned inside earlier with Marie; they should have both known better than that. The girl’s skin was fair still after all and not used to this strong sun.

“But you put this stuff on me” Marie retorted with a pout. She did not really know exactly what a sunburn actually was, but she was not thrilled about the prospect of having to find out now either.

Lexa sighed under her breath “That had obviously not been strong enough”.

“It washes off, too” Anya added nonchalantly “But a little sunburn will not kill you, little star” she tried to appease the girl. She did not know yet just how whiny Marie would be because of it later though. 

 

 

 

Chapter 260

Marie learned pretty quickly just how uncomfortable the sensation of a sunburn was.

After they had dried off, Anya and Lexa had ushered her back to their sleeping quarters, claiming that she should rest for a bit now.

Marie grumbled under her breath in annoyance. She had wanted to join the other children in the water and she was definitely not feeling tired, if anything she had noticed that her stomach made itself known, clenching in hunger, as she had not really eaten all that much during breakfast. “But I am hungry" she exclaimed with a slight pout; she truly did not want to rest. The day was much too bright and nice to sleep now and although her body did indeed feel the slightest bit tired out, she highly doubted that she actually required to sleep at all now.

“I will get us some lunch” Anya answered easily, giving Marie a slight push to continue her way back towards their temporary sleeping quarters.

Marie rolled her eyes, seeing no reason why they could not just eat together with the rest of the people in the big room again.

“Come on, Marie” Lexa said in a calm tone. She had of course noticed the eye roll, but Marie would still need to accept orders from them and if they let her make all the decisions, she shuddered to envision into which dangers the girl would land herself in the future if they let her run free completely.

Marie deflated a little and her resistance visibly dropped, knowing better than to keep on arguing with them like that. She did not wish for her moms to be angry at her after all.

In their temporary quarters Marie sat down on the edge of their bed, frowning a little when the heat radiating all through her body and which seemingly came from her skin truly registered within her mind. She brought a hand up to the skin exposed over her neckline and her frown deepened. The skin felt hot, much too hot already and touching it actually hurt a little too.

“My skin feels weird” she commented in a thoughtful tone, while she continued to lightly press her fingers against the reddish skin of her arm, watching as it became white for a moment, only to turn red again a moment later.

“Stop aggravating it” Lexa rebuked the child in a gentle tone, stepping closer to the girl and gently encasing the girl’s wrists with her own hands, pulling her arms away from her body “We shall better apply something now, before it really begins to hurt” she remarked thoughtfully. When the skin was this red already now, it would surely only look worse later.

Marie frowned at the commander’s words, but remained sitting motionless on the edge of the bed, while Lexa walked through the room, searching through a few bags and returning after a moment with another pot in hand.

“You need to undress again” Lexa said easily, while she already opened the pot, revealing that it contained some slimy looking cream of sorts.

Marie stood up again and quickly got rid of her clothes. She visibly winced when her shirt was dragged over the skin of her back.

Lexa’s brows furrowed in growing worry when she inspected the girl’s body more closely. The skin which had been covered by the girl’s fresh clothing by far looked the worse and she guessed that Marie would be more comfortable if she remained nude for now. She knew for sure that Marie had been forced through unimaginable pains and horrors at Nia’s hand, but that did not have to mean that the child would cope well with the relatively easy pain of a sunburn now that she was in completely different mindset. To make matters worse, Lexa knew that only she and Anya could blame themselves for this, Marie could not have known how to judge the strength of the sun at this time of the year.

“What is that?” Marie asked genuinely curious, when she saw Lexa scope out some of the slimy cream which actually appeared rather translucent.

“Aloe vera” Lexa answered easily and she began to distribute a thin layer of the gel carefully all over Marie’s body.

Marie pulled a face at the sensation “It feels weird” she complained, shuddering a little.

“The gel helps to cool the heat and eases the burning sensation” Lexa explained, not even acknowledging Marie’s complaint. They could also apply cold poultice later, if the child’s skin was getting too hot. With the way how Marie’s whole body seemed to be affected, she knew that she could easily catch a fever.

It took Lexa a few moments to apply the gel evenly to all of Marie’s skin and she immediately stopped the girl from sitting down on the bed, ordering her gently to remain standing for some time, so that at least most of the soothing gel could be absorbed into her skin.

Marie remained standing upright obediently, although visibly impatient. The slight headache she had already felt in the morning, seemed to have intensified by now and she noticed that she was more tired than she had previously assumed. If she was honest, she felt the slightest bit dizzy and just wanted to lie down now.

Before she could say so, Anya returned into their temporary quarters though, balancing a huge tray with a variation of foods and a jug with drinks in her arms.

“You can sit down again” Lexa appeased the girl; she had noticed that Marie’s expression seemed rather strained already.

Marie nodded mutely and she frowned when she realized how Anya was staring at her.

“This sunburn will hurt” Anya assessed with regret. They should have returned inside earlier with the girl. Even her own skin was a little reddish, but she knew it would have turned into a tan by tomorrow, she highly doubted though that Marie’s fair complexion would allow for the same.

~ ~ ~

They had eaten their lunch together and Lexa and Anya had both made sure that Marie drank plenty of water. They both knew that it was important to keep her hydrated now, her body would be under enough stress with this slight burn.

Afterwards, Marie had willingly lain down on the bed, only asking Lexa lowly if she would not join her. Lexa had obliged readily enough, offering to read a few pages to Marie and the girl had immediately been ecstatic about it.

Now, Marie was lying cuddled together with the commander on the bed. The girl was visibly sleeping and although Lexa’s eyes were closed as well, the brunette was merely lost in her thoughts.

Anya stood at one of the side scuttles, looking out over the sea in silence, internally contemplating about the future which now laid ahead of them. She did not know how long the peace among the clans truly would last, they were navigating into unknown waters now, none of those who lived could remember a time of true peace anymore. She knew some of the visions for a better future which Lexa had always harboured, but she knew that every change would be met with slight resistance, for fear of the change itself.

A gentle expression rested on her features, as she thought about finally having the ceremony to claim Marie officially as her daughter. It would only be a matter of a formality, but it still felt important. She had not truly believed anymore, that it would even come to pass at all.

Anya turned back around, letting her gaze settle on Marie and Lexa together. A thin blanket rested over Marie’s naked form and the child appeared utterly relaxed in her sleep.

The commander’s eyes opened when she felt the weight of Anya’s gaze resting on her and Marie.

The general slowly stepped closer to the bed, sitting down on the edge and gently brushing a lock of blonde hair out of Marie’s sleeping face.

“What is on your mind?” Lexa prodded in a low tone, letting one hand lightly trace over Marie’s back over the blanket, not strong enough to cause any discomfort on her burned skin, but still strong enough that Marie should subconsciously feel the light caress.

“The adoption ceremony” Anya said simply, no need for further explanation.

Lexa inclined her head in acknowledgement. She knew how much this formality would mean to Marie and her own decision about the matter had already been made as well “I will claim her as my own as well” she exclaimed in a determined tone.

One of Anya’s brows raised critically, mulling the younger woman’s words over in her mind for a few moments. It was unheard of for a commander to have children. But it also made sense as most commanders had not survived long enough into their reign. Marie would not truly be of Lexa’s blood and could never claim to succeed the brunette onto her throne. She could not really pinpoint a reason as to why Lexa should not be able to claim Marie as her daughter as well, beside that it had never been done before and was against an unspoken tradition. She could understand Lexa’s wish to claim the girl, too, though.

“You do not regard it as a good idea?” Lexa prodded after a few silent moments when she thought that Anya should have had enough time to contemplate her words.

Anya shook her head “I can understand” she assured the commander, having noticed the slight flicker of insecurity within her green eyes “Marie will be thrilled for sure” she added with a smile, which turned a little devilish when she said “Titus will have a fit though”.

Lexa snorted under her breath at the general’s obvious pleasure at imagining Titus’ reaction. She felt a little reassured that Anya was not already discouraging her intention, she would have no chance at convincing Titus if Anya was already against it.

Marie sighed slightly in her sleep, moving a little, until she had found another comfortable position and her breathing evened out again, as she drifted back into a deeper sleep.

~ ~ ~

They had spent the remaining day and most of the next day together in the quiet peacefulness of their temporary sleeping quarters.

Marie had been uncomfortable in her skin and had complained a lot about it itching and hurting. It was almost comical how the girl stopped complaining about her skin when she was offered to cuddle with one of them, which clearly was a touch as well.

On the first evening Marie’s temperature had begun to rise noticeably and Lexa had asked for Clarke to come to their room. The blonde healer had in fact not looked much better than Marie herself did, probably even worse. It seemed that no one seemed to have thought about offering some protection from the sun to the woman and she had obviously not been clever enough to recognize the need for one herself.

Clarke had immediately produced cold poultices for the girl and fortunately they had helped greatly in lowering Marie’s rising temperature and simultaneously had diminished the child’s discomfort greatly. 

Now that Marie had been protected from the sun for two days, her skin tone looked normal enough again that the girl would surely be able to move out into the sun again without getting burned immediately. No matter how much the child obviously enjoyed staying with them, lazing the day away with reading, cuddling and sleeping, Marie’s energy was obviously back to normal and the child was getting slightly bored confined inside now.

“Have I gotten any tan at all?” Marie asked with a slight frown. True to Anya’s prediction, the general’s skin had lost the slight reddish tint on the next morning and it had been replaced with a healthy tan. Marie could not judge at all if her skin was any tanner now or had just lost the reddish colour and was back to being as fair as before.

“You surely have” Lexa confirmed the girl’s question. She guessed that it would take the girl some time though to visibly acquire a tan and they should be more cautious now, before Marie just caught another sunburn. She had insisted on applying the sun protection to the child’s body before they left their sleeping quarters to once again join the others in the huge dining hall where breakfast was served now.

Marie smiled brightly at that, while she internally mused just how tan she could actually get. They had of course never been exposed to sunlight on the Ark, so all of them had been as pale as possible. She wondered how the other delinquents would all look like after a whole summer on earth and she also wondered how Maura might look like. Her smile dimmed a little when it registered within her mind that she had almost forgotten about her old friend, she had not thought to ask about the other girl in a long time now.

“What is troubling you?” Lexa asked in a low tone, guiding the girl with a hand on her back through the halls, with Anya walking beside them.

“I thought of Maura” Marie breathed out honestly, expression almost downtrodden. She suddenly truly missed her friend, how wonderful it would be if the other girl could be here at this moment, she was sure that they would have an utter blast together.

“You miss her?” Lexa guessed in a gentle tone. She still remembered how the two girls had acted together and their deep friendship had been utterly apparent on the first glance. It was no wonder that the child would think about those she had left behind in Arkadia.

Marie shrugged her shoulders as an only answer, feeling tears suddenly burn within her eyes.

“You will see her again” Anya tried to appease the child with an encouraging expression.

Marie looked up at the general with a slightly shaky smile “I will?” she asked uncertainty. She did not know for sure just what would happen once they returned to Polis. They had never resided long enough in the capitol for a true routine to set in and she was not utterly certain what her exact role would be from now on.

“We can make a visit to Arkadia whenever you wish” Anya offered with a gracious smile.

Marie’s expression brightened immediately at the prospect.

“Maura and her mother can certainly also visit Polis at one point if they wish to” Lexa added easily.

“Yay!” Marie exclaimed joyfully “She can meet the nightbloods then and Risha and the horses and …”.

Lexa and Anya bandied an amused glance over Marie’s head in silence.

“We will send her an invite once we return to Polis” Lexa concluded with a loving expression on her features.

Marie smiled brightly at the woman “Thank you, Mommy” she said honestly, hugging the commander enthusiastically.

~ ~ ~

On the fourth day after lunch, Anya agreed to help some of the Boat People take some smaller boats out into the open sea and fish.

Lexa asked Marie if she wished to join in or not, but for some reason, the child declined, so the commander decided to stay behind with Marie.

Now, Marie explored the complex oil rig on which the Boat People lived, with Lexa trailing behind her in silence. It was refreshing to see Marie’s grey eyes gleaming curiously at all the sights she did not know before and questions continuously bubbled from the child’s lips, clearly wanting to understand the world around herself. Lexa was not able to give a satisfying answer to all of them, but she tried to answer as many as possible.

On one of the levels they encountered a group of children, all gathered around Luna. The leader of the Boat People seemed to be holding some sort of lesson with the children, but she fell silent when she noticed the commander’s and Marie’s arrival.

“Enough for today” Luna concluded the lesson, motioning the children that they could stand up and leave if they pleased.

Marie was slightly surprised when one of the children approached her and asked her if she wanted to play with them. Her first impulse had been to immediately agree to the invitation, but she turned a questioning gaze towards Lexa instead, thinking better than just running off.

Lexa gave the girl an encouraging nod and watched her join the other children with a gentle look in her green eyes. She walked over to Luna slowly “You have taken over their teachings?” she questioned in honest interest.

Luna’s expression was definitely guarded when she answered “I want them to know better”.

“Know better?” Lexa echoed critically with a slight frown.

“They will know different than reacting to everything with violence” Luna retorted decisively.

Lexa looked at her fellow nightblood sister with a sigh. She knew that Luna had been matched against her own brother in their conclave and had only fled from it after she had killed him. They would never know if Luna might have won against her in the conclave or if she would have still risen to take over the throne and become the commander she now was.

“I try to teach them wisdom, compassion and strength as the pillars which are needed for a good commander” Lexa finally said; her gaze had turned over to Marie. The children had obviously settled on playing tag with each other and she could not fight against the slight smile rising onto her features when she heard Marie’s joyful giggles resonate through the metal room.

Luna’s gaze switched between Marie and the commander and a contemplative expression rested on her features “She has changed you” she assessed after a moment of silence “I knew that you had the potential to become great” she added.

Lexa’s brows furrowed slightly at the last comment. She did not know for certain how killing her brother would have changed Luna, but from what she remembered of the red-haired girl, she would have been as likely to make a good commander as she did herself.

She was saved from having to say anything though. When she looked back over at the group of children, she noticed Marie tripping over something on the floor and without further thought, she immediately rushed in her direction. She did not reach the child quick enough to catch her before she had fallen to her knees though.

“Are you alright?” Lexa immediately asked with worried green eyes. She helped the girl to turn around and sit down and she frowned when she noticed a hole in the child’s trousers. She could already see red blood shimmering on her knees. “It’s alright, it is just a skimmed knee” Lexa reassured the girl quickly, looking for something to clean the girl’s wound with.

Marie frowned at the commander, her knee barely hurt, it was nothing more than a slight sting. She did not understand why the woman appeared so worried over such a simple wound.

When Lexa did not find anything to sufficiently take care of Marie’s wound in her vicinity, she quickly scooped the girl up into her arms, carrying her through the halls and back towards their temporary sleeping quarters.

“I can walk, you know?” Marie questioned with furrowed brows, looking at the commander unsurely.

“Let me take care of your knee first, little star” Lexa retorted worriedly, tightening her arms around the girl minutely and quickening her steps.

Marie let the woman fuss over her, back in their quarters with an almost amused expression on her features. It was obvious that Lexa was worried, but she still did not understand entirely why at all. The wound would surely not even leave a scar. It did feel definitely nice though that Lexa hugged her close once her wound had been cleaned and even wrapped, so she did not complain but only enjoyed the gentle attention. If skimming her knee meant getting such cuddles, she would gladly do so again.

 

 

 

Chapter 27: Chapter 261 - 271

Chapter Text

Chapter 261

Marie enjoyed their time with the Boat People to her fullest. Lexa and Anya made sure that she got to try out everything which could be even remotely fun.

A full week had passed by almost in a blur and Marie had no idea that they had been here so long already. Each day still held something new. Even it is was just something small. Luna was taking care of the children of the Boat People a lot, teaching them things like strategical thinking through harmless games.

One such game was searching through the whole place for a small token. The children had been given little clues and a map. Marie quickly realized that they all needed to work together as the unique small clues fitted together to fill in the blanks in the map and still the map only led to further clues. It took all of them together nearly the complete day to find the small token.

Marie had frowned a little when Adria had finally pointed out that the token could only be her mother’s necklace. She would have expected some little object hidden somewhere and not a piece of jewellery actually worn by the person who had given them the whole task to begin with.

Adria had laughed at the other girl’s nonplussed expression.

“What is the sense in finding a token, when she was wearing it all along?” Marie grumbled a little moodily, thinking that all of this had been rather pointless.

Marie’s attention was called away from Adria, when she recognized one of the guards from Polis approaching Lexa. The commander and the general had remained behind on one of the decks, just sitting in the sun and talking. Marie was curious what was going on and she had the immediate foreboding that their stay here was going to be cut short.

She left Adria standing there without another word, not even waiting for a response. The guard had briskly said something to the commander and had obviously also been dismissed again already.

Secretly Marie was just waiting for Anya to announce that they finally would officiate their bond and that the adoption would take place. Every new morning, she hoped that the woman would hint at it, but so far, nothing. Slowly, she was getting impatient with the wait, fearing that Anya might have changed her mind in the meantime.

Lexa and Anya had seen her approach of course and Marie was not able to read anything from their expression of what the guard could have wanted from the commander. She aimed for her best innocent look and questioned “Do we have to leave already?” she knew that her tone had taken on a whiny note and it seemed to show an effect as well.

Lexa’s eyes were soft and gentle as she looked at the blonde girl and she shook her head in the negative “Not yet, no, Marie” she denied.

Marie’s expression brightened “It’s so much more fun here” she exclaimed joyfully.

Anya snorted under her breath, shaking her head a little at the girl. She thought for a moment of reprimanding the child, but decided against it. They could work on the girl’s focus on her education once they returned to Polis and a normal daily routine had set in again for all of them.

Marie’s expression turned more serene when she looked closer at Anya. The general had still made no indication to go through with the adoption. She stepped closer to the woman hesitantly. She knew that no one right now was standing close enough to them to listen to her words.

Gustus was sitting together with Clarke a few meters away, trying to teach the blonde young woman the written form of Trigedasleng further. Both of them were more focused on each other and were surely not even trying to listen to their conversation.

Lexa scrutinized the girl with the hint of a frown, she could not pinpoint where her apparent change of mood had come from at all. The child had seemed utterly happy and content here during the last days and they had done everything to keep her entertained.

Marie fiddled with the hem of her shirt, meeting Anya’s brown eyes a little unsurely “About the adoption…” she began lowly, biting at her lower lip for a second “…have you … have you changed your mind?” she added in a fading tone, barely loud enough for the two women to catch her words.

Lexa sighed under her breath. It was obvious that this question must have nagged at the girl’s mind for some time now. They had decided together that the adoption ceremony would take place in Polis and not here. They wanted to hold it together for all three of them at once and Lexa did not want to do so here, before she could even warn Titus of it. She would not let the man’s opinion deter her choice in the matter, but she still regarded it as important to warn him nevertheless.

“I have not changed my mind, little star” Anya reassured the girl in a strong tone. She bent forward and grasped onto one of her hands, pulling her closer to herself.

“The ceremony will be held in Polis” Lexa said with a slight smile.

Marie frowned a little, tilting her head to the side in confusion. She knew that Anya had wanted it to happen here, so, she could not understand the change in their plans now. She had actually hoped that it would be here, with less people and not in a totally formal setting. “Why in Polis?” she asked with the hint of a pout on her lips. Holding such a ceremony in Polis sounded awfully like it would turn into a grand festive occasion again and she would prefer something small. Marie was well aware that there would be people who would be openly against such an adoption, she would never be of Trikru blood after all “I thought we would do it here. Just the two … eh three of us” she added after the slightest moment of silence.

Lexa and Anya bandied a short mute glance. Lexa had actually wanted it to be a surprise to Marie that she would also participate in the adoption.

“The adoption will take place in Polis, Marie” Lexa repeated in a calm tone, reaching out and placing one hand on the girl back “It will have to be in Polis if a commander participates as well”.

Marie needed a moment until the words truly sunk into her mind and when it clicked, her smile brightened even further. She turned slightly so that she was looking up at Lexa with shining grey eyes “You’re gonna do it as well?” she questioned just for the clarity of it. She did not want to get her hopes up too high, only to be disappointed when it turned out that Lexa could not do it. She remembered vividly that Lexa had told her previously that she would want to officially claim her too, but could not as the commander.

“Yes” Lexa simply retorted with a nod and she was not surprised in the slightest when Marie threw herself at her in an enthusiastic hug. She caught the girl easily, bringing her up so that her legs could wrap around her own hips.

“Thank you, thank you, thank you” Marie chanted happily, squeezing Lexa’s neck tightly.

Anya observed the scene with an honest smile “Easy, Marie, or you’re going to throttle the great commander” she chided the child playfully.

Lexa rolled her eyes at her general, while Marie loosened her grip immediately and first threw a sheepish glance at Lexa before she looked over at Anya with a scowl on her lips.

“What did the guard want?” Marie questioned in open curiosity once Lexa sat her down on the ground again and she begrudgingly let go as well.

“Nothing of immediate importance for now” Lexa deflected the question easily “Why don’t you join back with the others to continue your play before we it is time for dinner?”.

Marie nodded her head immediately, skipping away from them quickly. Adria and the others were still in sight and she knew that they had planned to go for a swim now. Swimming was prohibited once the sun had set, so they only had a limited amount of time left to goof around in the water for now.

She had gotten absolutely well verse in swimming by now and had lost her fear of the endless water as well. Now, it was truly just fun to jump into it and play with the other children. Marie had also found out that she was really good at diving and holding her breath for longer periods of time.

When Luna was out in the water with them, the woman would try to teach those who were interested a special kind of breathing technique, which allowed you to dive even longer. Luna also threw some objects into the water and one after the other they were asked to dive behind it and get it back. Marie was extremely proud of herself for being able to get the object each and every time, without missing it even once.

Marie had also found out that she actually enjoyed fishing. She had learnt from Anya how it was supposed to be done. To her great surprise Clarke had insisted on being there with them. Clarke had been bored even after the first few minutes of waiting and Anya had constantly scolded her for being utterly impatient. To Anya’s utter chagrin, Marie had freaked out when they truly caught the first fish. The girl had pleaded in a screeching tone for the fish to be released again without being harmed. In the end Anya had conceded and had in fact let the fish go. Marie still enjoyed fishing. But more for the sake of sitting closely together with Anya and on occasion Lexa, no need for talking, just enjoying each other’s company, than getting a fish. She liked seeing the different kind of fish that lived in the depths of the sea, but she did not want them to be killed and finally eaten.

Lexa and Anya both made sure to apply some of the protection against the harsh sun to Marie’s fair skin every morning before they allowed her outside.

~ ~ ~

“You know Adria said…” Marie babbled on happily.

Lexa sighed under her breath, pulling her hands back slightly, trying to reign in her annoyance with the child’s chirpy attitude at the moment. Marie was so absorbed in her words about Adria, that she barely sat still for longer than a second.

Anya stood up from the bed, having watched the scene for long enough and she took up the pot with the crème, scooping out a generous amount of the substance.

“Marie hold still” she chided the girl in a slightly sharp tone.

Anya’s words seemed to have little effect on the girl though.

“And her smile is so pretty…” Marie continued undisturbed as if she had not heard Anya at all.

Anya bandied one short glance with Lexa, before she simply smacked the crème into Marie’s face.

The girl gaped at both of them with wide eyes, obviously totally caught of guard by Anya’s actions.

“We both told you to sit still” Anya retorted easily and she reached out and spread some of the crème over Marie’s face, removing the rest to distribute it over her upper body instead.

Marie visibly pouted and remained resolutely silent, grey eyes glaring at Anya the whole time.

Lexa tried to hide her amusement at the girl’s childish antics “You can go now” she finally allowed Marie to catch up with the other children, with whom she had agree to meet for another swim. She watched the girl run from their room with a slight frown “If I didn’t know better, I would say that she has a crush on Adria” she said out lout.

Anya nodded her head in mute agreement.

“But she is so young” Lexa exclaimed with a deepened frown. The girl had been through so much and at times acted so clingy which even belied her age of ten summers, that she had absolutely not thought at all about the fact that their daughter was even old enough to look at someone like that “Too young for this”.

Anya snorted slightly under her breath “You were not so much older when you met Costia” she reminded the younger woman with twinkling brown eyes. The scene which had right now played out between them reminded her of something which had occurred to her and Lexa years ago already, only had she then not smacked crème into Lexa’s face but warpaint. She could still remember the deep scowl on the young brunette’s face back then, black war paint dripping from her still roundish features, green eyes glinting angrily and lips pressed into a thin line of displeasure.

Lexa huffed under her breath. Theoretically, she knew that Anya was right. She had met Costia during her eleventh summer and had instantly felt the connection between them. But had she ever been like this? Was Marie truly already having a crush on someone? She did not even wish to imagine Marie kissing any one in a sexual manner.

“Oh, yes” Anya exclaimed “You have been exactly like that” she affirmed Lexa’s internal musing.

Lexa snorted with a shake of her head “Surely not” she denied, rolling her eyes “She is too young to think of someone like that” she added after a moment.

“It will remain innocent for now” Anya said in a decisive tone.

“I hope you are right” Lexa agreed thoughtfully “She is not even officially ours yet…”.

~ ~ ~

They stayed for another complete week until Lexa had proclaimed that they would leave on the following day.

Marie had pouted for a full hour at that proclamation. She had known right from the beginning that they were not going to stay forever, but the thought of leaving did not sit right with her either. She enjoyed having Lexa and Anya to herself the whole day without having to attend lessons or without either of them being occupied with political duties for most of the day. Marie knew all too well that their lives were going to change drastically again once the daily routine of Polis had set in after their return. She wasn’t sure if it would make any difference once she was officially their daughter, but she doubted that it would change all that much.

“You know very well that I cannot stay here” Lexa tried to reason with the pouting girl, trying to appease her in a soft tone.

Marie nodded begrudgingly. She knew that Lexa was the commander and that her place was within Polis and logically she also knew that as the commander’s seconds – and soon daughter as well – she would also belong into Polis now.

“What are you afraid of?” Lexa questioned, stopping the girl from leaving the room. Anya had left their room before dawn, wanting to join a group of fishermen in their attempt to make bigger prey.

Marie shrugged her shoulders indecisively “I am not afraid” she said defensively “but I like it here…” she added and when Lexa just watched her silently with a heavy piercing gaze, Marie continued lowly “…it will be all different once we are back. I don’t wanna only see you to dinner…”.

Lexa sighed under her breath and she gave the girl’s shoulder a squeeze “We will not only see each other for dinner, Marie, once everything has settled down, I will have more time available as well”.

Marie nodded, not looking entirely convinced at all.

“You can participate in the nightblood’s trainings as often as you like and I will keep at least an hour a day free only for you” Lexa tried to appease the child even further.

Marie smiled lightly “Sounds alright” she agreed after a moment of silent contemplation. She truly looked forward to seeing the others again, Ontari and Risha the most of course and she really hoped that both of her horses would be fine too. “Do you think that the foal has grown much already?” she questioned, remembering about the foal right now.

“That certainly depends on your definition of “much”” Lexa answered easily with a hint of a smile tilting the lips of her lips upwards. They would not have been gone for longer than three weeks and that was definitely not enough time for the foal to have reached its full heights, but some growth would surely be visible by now.

~ ~ ~

Saying goodbye to Adria and Luna was a tearful experience for Marie. She had grown to like Adria very much and even Luna had grown on her as she had spent more time with the other children and the leader of the Boat People.

“I will miss it here” Marie said once they woke up again on the shore. When she turned back and looked over the sea, she could not even make out the place where the Boat People lived at all.

“We can come back at one point” Lexa assured the girl easily.

Marie nodded with a slight frown, wondering just how much time would truly pass until they saw each other again. She was diverted from her line of thought by Anya wanting to hoist her onto the general’s horse.

“I am sure you look forward to seeing Ontari and Risha again” Anya tried to lift the child’s clearly glum mood “You will have a lot to tell to Ontari after all, all that you have seen here. I am sure Ontari has never been here”.

Marie contemplated the general’s words for a few moments, before something flashed through her grey eyes “You are right. I have soooooo much to tell her and to Boo of course. I can tell him so much about his sister. Adria is soooo amazing…”.

Anya nodded with a slight snort under her breath, not really paying too much attention to the child’s rambling from that point on. She had heard Marie praising Adria before and she knew that the girl could continue with that for quiet some time.

 

Chapter 262

Clarke observed Marie closely during their journey back from the Boat People. It almost seemed as if something had changed within the younger girl.

The blonde child smiled much more often again and all in all she just appeared happier. A healthy tan had now replaced her sickly pale complexion and it seemed as if Marie had begun to regain just the slightest bit of weight already.

She was still too thin, but Clarke was sure that Marie would increase her weight quickly now that she could once again eat normally and she had noticed that her appetite must have already returned back to normal as well. Clarke still remembered how Lexa and Anya had to convince Marie to eat even a meagre portion at all meals on their journey to the Boat People. She was fairly certain that Anya and Lexa would begin Marie’s physical training again once they reached Polis, so the girl would quickly regain all the muscle mass she had lost during her sickness.

She had caught Anya scolding the child more than once in the dining hall with the Boat People on taking too much desert for herself. She watched the scene mutely from across the room and she had laughed at Lexa attempting to solve the little conflict by negotiating between her general and their daughter, making up a compromise which had appeased both of them.

Clarke could understand to a certain degree why Marie seemed truly downtrodden when they woke up on the shore and there was no sign of any of the Boat People around them any longer.

Their horses and all their equipment were already waiting for them by the treeline. It seemed that Lexa and Anya were in no real hurry to reach the capitol and had already proclaimed that they would travel back in a similar pace they had already used during their journey there. Marie would certainly be able to appreciate the actual sights they travelled by much better now.

Hera had indeed been granted refuge with the Boat People and had stayed with them.

Clarke had known beforehand that Lexa and Anya had wanted to speak with the old woman about her own daughter’s talent and she had been surprised to be invited to this conversation. Lexa had brushed her bewilderment of quickly though, saying that it would certainly be helpful if she as a healer could recognize the signs of a repetition of Marie’s sickness before it got the chance to get this severe again. Unfortunately, Hera of course did not have any answers to all the questions Clarke found the most interesting, like where this talent actually came from and how it really worked on a molecular level.

Hera had explained to them everything which she could remember from Jude’s talent. Clarke found it a little too extreme that Lexa and Anya had insisted to be given a small boat just for this conversation. Marie had not seemed to think anything of it when she was left with Luna and the other children, obviously quite happy to continue playing around with Adria and the others. Gustus had joined them and he had rowed them some distance into the open ocean.

Clarke had been entranced by the view and she was internally amused by the apparent almost paranoid protectiveness from the commander and the general. It truly sounded hilarious to her now, that she had once in the past been convinced that Marie would have a horrible life only filled with violence with them when the truth looked so different.

Jude’s talent had manifested itself much earlier in her life than Marie’s now had and Clarke still wondered what might have been the reason for Marie’s to show itself so late. She did wonder if it would have ever shown on the Ark or if some contact to nature had been needed. Hera had said that her own daughter had first been able to revive a small tree and Anya had described what she had witnessed with the flowers directly before the war against the Mountain.

Clarke still couldn’t really imagine just what this must have looked like, but she still vividly remembered it when Marie had healed Lexa from the arrows, wounds which should have killed the commander had magically disappeared in a few seconds, leaving behind nothing but very faint scars.

Hera had explained to them that Jude had also gotten progressively weaker the more often she had used her talent. The woman was convinced that her daughter had been fine as long as she had healed only wounds, but as soon as she had tried to heal diseases or simply restore someone else’s energy, it had depleted herself.

Lexa and Anya had both agreed that Marie should only use her talent if strictly needed. They wanted to prevent a repetition of the child nearly being killed by her own talent at all costs. None of them actually knew just how much longer the time would stretch the next time before Marie’s talent would kick in to save her. Clarke internally had mussed about the question of how long it could even potentially stretch. She knew of course that a corpse would begin to decay at one point and she somehow sensed that there needed to be a certain maximal time of how long Marie’s talent had to revive her. Lexa and Anya had spoken about that too, hypostatising that Marie’s soul had apparently not had moved on yet. But Clarke had no idea if she believed in that concept and even if she did, when did a soul leave a body?

~ ~ ~

Marie would have preferred having her own horse to ride on their way back. But they had only come to the Boat People with four horses and the clan did not keep horses they could easily spare. So, Marie was left again to alternating between sharing a horse with either Lexa or Anya. Internally, Marie did not mind that fact all that much. She knew that she would have been able to steer a horse again physically and mentally, as she did not tire out so quickly anymore. But she actually still enjoyed the physical closeness sharing a hors naturally provided.

Although she was definitely looking forward to seeing Ontari and Risha and all the other nightblood children again, a part of her mind already missed the different daily routine they had had at the Boat Peoples’ place and she really hoped that Lexa would keep her word and reserve some free time for her on a daily basis. She wondered if Anya and she would have to move out of the commander’s quarters immediately now as well. She had slept really well the last two weeks. Somehow everything had been so exiting and fun through the day, that she had barely noticed how exhausted she physically was after a day of playing around for hours.

“Lexa?” she asked lowly, not yet wanting Anya who was riding beside them to hear what she wanted to question the commander on.

Lexa inclined her head mutely; looking down at the child leaned against her chest with an open and almost tender expression, waiting for her to speak up. Marie’s expression looked slightly troubled, so whatever was on her mind was obviously worrying the girl.

“Can we stay in your rooms?” Marie asked after a beat of silence, grey eyes looking up at the commander expectantly.

Lexa blinked for a second, wondering what the girl actually meant with her question.

Marie had not spoken as softly as she had hoped and Anya’s snorted slightly under her breath. “We will figure out our sleeping arrangements together with Ontari in the upcoming weeks” she answered for both of them. So far, the blonde child still visibly enjoyed sharing a bed with them. But they also knew that this should not be a durable solution, even less so with Ontari in the picture. Anya had no intention of letting their impending adoption change her relationship as a first to the Ice Nation nightblood girl. Ontari had more than proven herself worthy to Anya and she would treat her accordingly.

Lexa sighed slightly under her breath. She enjoyed sharing her private space much more with the girl than she had ever expected and it was actually hard to imagine being truly alone again for some time.  She did not wish to ban Marie from her quarters and the child would certainly always be welcomed to sleep next to her as well, but Lexa knew of course that Marie would need to get a little more independent of them in that regard; she was no toddler after all. Marie did not seem all that reassured by Anya’s answer and worry lingered visible within her grey eyes.

She tightened her arms in reassurance around the girl’s smaller body, making their contact the slightest bit closer “You will always be welcomed in my quarters” Lexa said in a decisive tone “even after moving back to your own rooms” she added after a second.

Marie smiled up brightly at Lexa, satisfied enough with the commander’s reassurance for now. She had occasionally tiptoed back over into the commander’s quarters before and neither of her future moms had scolded her for it back then either. So, she guessed that she could live with the fact if they moved back into their original quarters.

~ ~ ~

Ontari’s mood had continued to plummet down with each passing day without any word of the whereabouts of the small group which had travelled with Marie. She deeply regretted now that she had rejected the younger girl’s advances on sharing a real goodbye. There were so many things left unsaid in her mind, that she almost desperately wished to be able to turn back the time. She should have just listened to Marie, giving the blonde girl a chance to say her goodbyes and finally admit out loud just how much she personally had treasured their friendship.

She had learned from Boo that the travel to his former home and where the Boat People resided could be done in around a day if really hastened or could take up to three or four days, really just depending on how fast the group had travelled. Ontari did not think that it was a good sign that there was no word from the commander at all. Titus had been quiet frank about the fact that Lexa had not planned to return to the capitol – if there was no dire emergency – until after Marie had passed away from her sudden illness.

Ontari found it extremely hard to imagine how things would change once the commander and the general returned to Polis. She could only try to fathom how the loss of Marie would change them. She remembered that the younger girl had mentioned that the general had already lost another second months ago. She had been sure of her place with the Trikru woman before, but what if this bereavement now changed that again?

Marie’s wolf seemed as lost as Ontari internally felt and it had almost naturally developed that Risha now stayed close to her through the day, even going as far as sleeping at the foot of her bed. During the first days Ontari had tried to actively shoo the wolf away, not wanting the animal’s constant presence as a painful reminder of the younger girl’s absence, but with time she had begun to draw comfort from Risha. She would certainly never love the wolf in the way Marie had, but Ontari had decided to take care of the animal for her friend’s stead.

After living together with the other nightbloods for almost two weeks, she found their presences tolerable enough. But Ontari did not really wish to stay for them forever. She had liked sharing quarters together with Anya and of course Marie much better. But she was unsure if the general would even want her to remain with her at all. She had to keep the possibility in mind that Anya would reject her altogether now.

She knew that Aden was making an effort to have her at least somewhat included in the interactions with the rest of the conclave, but as the time passed Ontari continued to consciously isolate herself from the others.

A very small part of her mind still refused to acknowledge that she would never see Marie again. She had not begun yet to truly grieve for the loss of her first and probably only ever real friend. She still had no idea how she had been found worthy of the younger girl’s compassion and she would never know now either.

Ontari was even more so conscious of the fact that the rest of the conclave would be set up in an arena to fight to the death for the position of being the next commander. Even thinking about the fact that she had already lost Marie – the first person she had ever really allowed herself to care for – just cut too deeply to contemplate on it and she could not afford to be distracted by something as weak as feeble feelings for the other nightbloods once the day of the fall of Lexa came and she knew that it would one day in the future. She still was not sure if she actually felt comfortable with the concept of being responsible for so many lives as the potential next commander. Nia had made ruling sound so easy in a way, that Ontari still found it difficult to now acknowledge the differences in the mindset she was taught in the capitol.

The training sessions were barely able to hold her attention at the moment as thoughts of Marie unbidden continued to cloud her mind. Ontari still performed well enough in all trainings that she was not called out on her lack of attention, but she doubted that this would continue forever either. It almost felt as if Titus was lenient with them but she shooed that idea from her mind as soon as it had crossed her thoughts, regarding it highly unlikely that the strict flamekeeper was even capable of mustering this level of compassion.

Nearly three weeks had passed by the time that word reached them of the fact that the commander would be returning to the capitol in under an hours, having been sighted already nearing Polis. Ontari had been in a training session together with Aden supervised by Titus. Her own mixed feelings on the news were mirrored visibly on the blonde boy’s features and his blue eyes had turned troubled. Ontari had almost forgotten that all of them had taken an instant deep liking to Marie as well and she felt a small flash of annoyance cross her mind as jealousy flared up its angry head. Aside from Anya and Lexa, she had by far had the deepest connection to Marie and for some reason it annoyed her to see the others broadcast their grief much more openly than she allowed herself to. She had heard Aden discuss Marie’s death with the younger children and she almost fled the nightbloods chambers in haste, unwilling to partake in said discussion or even just listening to it.

Titus had called together the rest of the conclave, telling them to wait for the commander’s arrival at the base of the tower. Ontari was internally torn between wanting to get this over with and fearing the exact moment when even she could no longer deny that she would never see Marie again and had to acknowledge the younger girl’s death.

Ontari’s dark eyes lingered on the light wolf standing beside her. She had become better at sort of being able to sense the animal’s mood and she could see how tense Risha stood beside her. She had grown comfortable with touching the wolf during the last weeks as she had noticed that the wolf seemed to really wish to be caressed occasionally and she reached out now too, letting her fingers card through the wolf’s grey surprisingly soft fur.

She could hear a slight murmur travelling through the other children gathered in front of her and her frown darkened a fraction further, preparing herself mentally for the heavy blow Ontari was already expecting her heart to experience at finally seeing the commander and general return without Marie with them.

Ontari tightened her fingers slightly in the wolf’s fur when she noticed Risha beginning to wag her tail in anticipation. She did not know what reaction to expect from the wolf when it realized that its human was gone. Maybe the wolf would even return to nature altogether instead, preferring to live in the woods without Marie there.

“How is that possible?” Ontari heard Boo’s slightly high-pitched voice ask, filled with clear astonishment instead of the grief she had expected. For some reason Boo had cared just the slightest bit more for Marie than the others had.

Ontari finally looked up, steeling herself mentally once again and her eyes widened in pure disbelief at the sight. She blinked a few times in astonishment, fearing that her mind might be playing tricks on her and showing her what she simply wished to see instead of the bitter and painful reality.

Marie was sitting in front of Anya on the general’s hazelnut horse, looking as healthy as ever and smiling brightly at them, even waving at the group of the conclave with twinkling grey eyes. The girl had visibly acquired a rather strong tan during their time at the Boat People, but Ontari had no doubt that it in fact was Marie with Anya and not some other unfamiliar blonde girl instead.

Ontari let go of Risha when the wolf suddenly made a jump forward, breaking through the line of the conclave and running over to the small group which had just arrived in front of the tower.

Some citizens from Polis had also gathered around the tower to welcome their commander and Ontari internally mused for a moment if word had actually spread about the reason for the commander’s travel at all. But the surprise which was almost palpable between the conclave was not mirrored on any of their faces, so Ontari was relatively sure that no one had been told beside them.

The general’s horse let out an almost panicked neigh at Risha’s fast approach and Anya frantically tried to calm her horse, while Marie loudly tried to get the wolf to back down for now.

Ontari needed another second before her senses returned to her and she left the other nightblood children behind, following the wolf and trying to get a grip on the animal, so that Marie and Anya could dismount safely. Her thoughts were running wildly through her mind though, the most pressing question of course just how it was possible for Marie to be here at all. Had the Boat People been able to offer some sort of miracle cure to the younger girl? Somehow Ontari doubted that though if even the Skykru healers had not been able to supply Marie with something how should the Boat People have been able to do so. From Wanheda’s words Ontari had understood that Marie’s sickness could only end in death and there was no real cure available at all. But she could see the younger girl clearly with her own eyes and it was also obvious that Marie was physically doing much better as well. How was that possible?

Ontari momentarily forgot all the questions coursing loudly through her mind when Anya had managed to calm her mount down and she was suddenly almost assaulted by Marie, being pulled into an enthusiastic hug. It took her barely the flash of a second to reciprocate the hug, letting her own arms wind themselves around Marie’s smaller frame and Ontari felt her lips tug into an honest huge smile. Marie was alive and with that thought and physical proof she tightened her arms just slightly around the other girl’s body. She was there and that was all that mattered for now.

 

Chapter 263

“Do you think Ontari will have been really sad?” Marie asked, speaking out loud the thought which had bugged her mind for some time now. It had hurt her pretty deeply that Ontari had fought with her before they had left Polis and had not given her the chance to really speak her goodbyes with the older girl.

They had continued to travel back towards Polis much slower than she had expected, but she was delighted of course. Anya and Lexa still let her have time to play with them in the afternoons, making break for the day long before the sun would set. They had all even played tag with her again and without her having to convince them to either.

Anya blinked for a second, wondering at what Marie was even aiming at.

She was currently sharing her horse with their daughter and they would be reaching the gates to Polis in under an hour and she was internally occupied with planning what all needed to happen during the next few days. Lexa and she had agreed that they wanted to hold the adoption ceremony as soon as possible. It was not just important to Marie only any longer, but to the both of them too. She would also need to take back up training with her unit and of course with Ontari and Marie. She knew that the flamekeepers would have upheld Ontari’s training, but she wanted the Ice Nation nightblood girl to learn different things than they found of utmost importance. The girl had more than proven herself skilled in fighting techniques, but she was still lacking other qualities.

“I mean, do you think she had grieved for me?” Marie repeated her question in other words, voice soft and tinted with hesitation as if she were afraid of a negative answer.

Anya snorted under her breath at the clearly twisted views of the blonde child. It would not have even crossed her mind to doubt that fact. The way in which Ontari had outright refused to acknowledge that Marie was facing her death in the impending future before they had left Polis had been proof enough of that, not included all the times the Ice Nation girl had risked her own life to save Marie’s. She had actually been worried about Ontari’s reaction when they were to return to the capitol without Marie. These worries had of course fortunately now become null. Marie was alive and healthy again and they would try everything in their might to keep it that way.

“She undoubtedly will still be grieving” Anya retorted in a decisive tone. Ontari and the other nightbloods together with whomever else had been privy to the information regarding the child’s declining health and the reason for the commander’s sudden departure from the capitol would surely be nonplussed to see the girl return healthier than before.

Marie’s expression of hesitation turned into sadness and regret “I had not meant to make her feel bad…” her words trailed off, clearly forlorn.

Anya tightened her arms reassuringly around the child’s frame, bringing her closer to her chest. Marie had still continued to occasionally drop little apologies to them during the last days, clearly feeling guilty for having caused them pain. But all of them were aware that what had transpired wasn’t by any means the child’s fault or could have even been caused by her. Lexa and she were continuously trying to make Marie believe that they were not holding her responsible in any way for it, but it was obvious that they had not had that much success with it yet.

“…or any of you” Marie added in an unhappy whispered tone and her features pulled into a cloudy grimace.

Anya sighed under her breath, banding a silent glance with Lexa. She wasn’t sure if the brunette woman had been able to catch their daughter’s low words, but judging from the commander’s troubled expression she in fact had.

“Marie, what has happened has not been your fault in any way” Anya repeated the words for what now felt like the hundredth time already during the last days and she tried hard to keep her tone kind and not show the slight annoyance which was building inside of her mind at the child’s clear stubbornness to believe their words “You have not chosen to nearly die and we do not want you to feel responsible for it. There is nothing for you to feel guilty about”.

Marie made a slight noise of agreement, letting her gaze travel ahead of them and not speaking up again.

Anya’s lips thinned visibly and she opened her mouth to try to convince the girl again, but the commander shaking her head next to them silenced her before she could reprimand their daughter. She could only hope that Lexa was correct in her assumption that Marie would finally understand them with time on her own.

Marie straightened in the saddle in front of Anya as soon as the outskirt of Polis got into clear view ahead of them.

“What am I to say to the others of how I got healthy again?” Marie spoke up again after a few minutes of silence while Polis got closer and closer to them with every passing moment.

It was Lexa who answered their daughter this time “That the Boat People had been able to help you”. Anya and Lexa had discussed about the matter together a few nights ago. They had decided that the only one who would be told the truth would be Titus, but no one else. It was unfortunate that Ontari had already heard about the fact that Skykru had not been able to help Marie, but they were not overly worried that Ontari would question their word.

Marie frowned slightly “And how would they have done that?” she continued to question. She did not know just how much the others might press her and she knew that she was not really creative in coming up with lies. She was not feeling really comfortable with the concept of having to lie at all, but if she had to, then she wanted to know enough to be able to lie convincingly.

Lexa bandied another glance with Anya. They had also thought hard about this question. “We do not want Ontari to know about your talent” Lexa retorted, not really asking the question “She will certainly not ask you what they did for you specifically. Just tell her that the Boat People helped you and if she has further questions, she can ask me or Anya”. She didn’t think that Ontari would even care to really question what had happened. If that was being the case though, they would face the problem when it presented itself.

Marie nodded with a slight frown, not at all convinced that this would work out. She still thought it would actually be better if Ontari just knew about her talent. She could use it much more freely around Anya and Lexa then, too. But they had both cautioned her rather sharply and repeatedly on the fact that they both did not wish for her to use her talent too frequently, but only in dire emergencies.

As soon as they crossed the gates to the capitol, citizens began to gather around the streets, wanting to welcome their beloved leader back into their midst. Marie smiled shyly, burrowing herself a little closer back against Anya. The continuously growing crowd was freaking her out slightly and she could feel her breathing becoming a little uneven while her eyes scanned the crowd for potential dangers.

She felt some of the tension drain from her frame again, when they finally neared the tower and she spotted the conclave standing at one entrance of it, gathered together in a small group.

Marie smiled brightly at them, trying to block out the surge of guilt at seeing their obvious disbelief. She frowned for a second, failing to locate Ontari at first, before she spotted the older girl in the back of the group. Her smile brightened even further when the dark-haired girl finally looked up and noticed her presence with Anya on the hazelnut horse.

She let out a slightly frightened squeal when Anya’s horse began to show signs of wanting to baulk when Risha ran towards them. She had only seen once how a horse had baulked and a rider had been thrown down, nearly trampled by his own horse in the process. Her smile had frozen completely and her grey eyes widened in fear.

Marie called out to Risha, trying to command the wolf to move back. They had sort of tried to begin training the animal previously in that regard, but had not made that much progress yet and it showed now. Her calls were all in vain and only Ontari was able to hold the wolf back physically.

Marie breathed out a sigh of relief as soon as her feet touched the ground finally and she immediately separated from Anya, almost running towards Ontari and launching herself at the older girl.

“I am so glad to see you again” she breathed out with shining grey eyes, looking up at Ontari with a kind and content smile once they separated after a few silent moments, with Anya hovering behind them.

“You are here” Ontari retorted, dark eyes still showing her clear surprise and puzzlement at that fact “You are really here”.

Marie nodded in agreement, smile widening a fraction “And the best, I am healthy again” she proclaimed to the older girl, low enough that not everyone around them would be able to overhear her words.

Anya’s lips thinned slightly, sensing that Marie might say something she should not to Ontari soon and even less so out in the open like they were now. So, she quickly steered both girls back towards the tower, needing to watch her steps as to not fall over Risha. The wolf was running wildly around Marie, clearly trying to somehow express her own joy at being reunited with her human again.

Marie’s expression turned slightly sheepish when she noticed Anya’s mute warning stare resting on herself for long moments. Her attention was diverted quickly enough when they reached the rest of the conclave and she smiled brightly in greeting at the other children.

“I got soooo much to tell to you” she addressed Boo enthusiastically, turning to the younger boy with a toothy smile “…”.

“And you can do so at a later point” Anya jumped in, giving the girl a slight push towards the entrance of the tower. It was already rather late in the day and there would time for the children to reconcile tomorrow after they had all settled down and rested for the night.

Marie pouted a little at the woman, giving her the best attempt at an innocent look in the hopes of swaying Anya’s mind. She wanted to speak to the nightblood children now and she felt almost filled to bursting with all the things which she wanted to tell them about.

Lexa followed behind them, letting her gaze travel over her nightblood proteges slowly. The children all looked to be alright on first glance and she knew that their expressions would have been anything but happy if they had returned without Marie, it was more than obvious just how relieved they all were about seeing the blonde girl again.

Internally Lexa was reminded of the fact that she still wished to at least initiate the change of the rules of the conclave which would determine her successor. Seeing the remaining nightblood children now, reasonably happy and healthy, Lexa felt resolve on that harden. She had previously thought that she should not try to push for too many changes at once. But no one could predict just how long her reign would still last. She knew that forcing Marie’s adoption would surely only be met with resistance from Titus, but she would refuse to listen to his contradictions. She still wished to see so much things implemented, having gotten way too many ideas on how to make the lives of her people better, so that they could thrive to built a lasting peace in an advancing society. She did not wish for her people to have to fear for their survival on a daily basis. She wanted them to have more than mere survival. Lexa was aware of the fact that it was likely that she would not succeed in implementing even half of all which she dreamed off, but she would make sure that Marie at least would live her life to her fullest.

~ ~ ~

Marie felt Risha constantly roam around her legs in the elevator as they waited for the contraption to carry them to the top of the tower.

Ontari had hung back in front of the elevator for a moment, unsure if she was expected to remain with the conclave or not. The hint of a blush had settled onto her cheeks at Anya’s not impressed look and she had quickly stepped inside the small room and close to Marie. She still found it hard to understand how Marie could even be there at all.

Marie smiled at Ontari “I hope you see the ocean once too. It was so cool swimming in the open water and there were fish too and …”.

Ontari tried to listen closely to all that Marie had to narrate about her adventures at the Boat People. It sounded as if the girl had been well through most of their stay there. But it could also be that Marie was just leaving out the time where she still had been sick. Her head quickly swam with all the information Marie was almost bombarding her with. It was obvious that Marie had greatly enjoyed her time from the capitol though and Ontari did not even try to do more than make a few noises of agreement here and there. Marie did not seem at all discouraged by Ontari’s lack of participation in their conversation and enthusiastically kept on filling the older girl in to all that she had missed.

Anya mutely watched their daughter’s antics with amusement dancing through her brown eyes. It was more than refreshing to be able to see the blonde child so lively again.

“Where are we gonna sleep tonight?” Marie suddenly interrupted her narration, grey eyes turning expectantly towards Lexa and Anya, gaze switching back and forth between both women.

“Where do you want to sleep, little star?” Lexa asked the child good naturedly. They had moved into the commander’s quarters by now and Marie had settled down on the couch, Risha had placed her muzzle onto the child’s thighs and Marie let her fingers gently glide through her silky fur.

Marie did not need longer than a second to quickly retort that she wished to stay in the commander’s quarters and Lexa merely inclined her head in agreement, seeing no problem in indulging the child in this.

At this confirmation, Marie stripped out of her coat and unlaced her boats, letting them drop to the floor next to the couch and crossing her legs under herself, sitting more comfortably on the couch. She took back up her narration with barely any pause, telling Ontari all about the few times she had gone out onto the sea with Lexa and Anya to fish and had made them set the fish free again after observing them for a moment.

Ontari snorted under her breath with a raised brow when Marie told her about her allergic reaction to the shellfish. She could almost vividly imagine just how panicky the commander and the general would have reacted to this happening.

“…and you know what is best?” Marie suddenly interrupted her narration of all which she had done and seen, grey eyes shining with utmost joy.

Ontari blinked at the younger girl for a second and a slight scowl settled onto her features, having absolutely no idea at what Marie was hinting at all.

“I will gonna be Anya’s and Lexa’s daughter officially soon” Marie exclaimed excitedly, wiggling on the couch to Risha’s clear dismay.

Ontari frowned at this piece of information, being caught off guard by it. She knew that a commander never had had a family before. But she of course also knew that Marie had been calling both Trikru women as a mother for some time already. She still wondered how the reactions to this happening would be like. She highly doubted that the flamekeeper would be too happy about it either. “I am happy for you” she awkwardly tried to react to the younger girl’s proclamation. She was thankfully saved from having to say more by Alira’s arrival to the commander’s quarters.

The older woman had of course been informed of their arrival back in the tower and had also heard that Marie had returned as well. She had immediately tasked a younger handmaid to go to the market and fetch the honey cakes the blonde child seemed to love so much. She had also known of Marie’s disease and had spoken her goodbyes to the girl weeks ago. The joy at hearing that Marie miraculously had survived against at all odds was even greater now.

Marie seemed deeply touched by the small gesture of having ordered the honey cakes and the handmaid personally welcomed her back into the capitol with a kind smile on her features.

Marie stood up from the couch quickly and hugged the handmaid as well. Alira had been kindly to her right from the start and she knew just how often the woman had provided her with honey or small treats which she liked so much.

Marie’s smile was still bright and her grey eyes shone with happiness as she stepped back from the handmaid again. Internally Marie mused that she really hoped that everything would just stay calm and peaceful for a few weeks at least. She had now everything she had dreamed off. She would soon officially have a loving family again. She had friends. She had Risha. And most importantly she had found her place and her home with her moms here in Polis.

“I never thought to find a home with you” Marie said cryptically to Anya, stepping over to the general, who had been occupied with emptying some of their bags from the travels.

Anya’s slight grimace of annoyance at finding many more shells inside of their bags than they had agreed on Marie packing, immediately was replaced with a loving expression. She would have never believed this turn of events to be possible either and yet she would not exchange it for anything else.

“You are always going to have a home here now, little star” Lexa reassured the girl in a soft tone, appearing in front of her and placing a tender kiss on her forehead, before Marie smiled brighter and enveloped the commander in another hug.

“Do you wish for a bath to be prepared?” Alira asked, having distributed the plates for dinner on the table in the meantime.

“Yay!” Marie exclaimed joyfully at the prospect of a real hot bath. The Boat People did not seem to think all that much of the habit of a hot bath during summer, preferring the ocean instead.

Lexa chuckled slightly while Anya snorted under her breath. Both well aware that they were going to spoil their daughter rotten and both not really finding anything wrong with that either.

 

 

Chapter 264

The next days passed by in a blur as they slowly worked out a routine.

Lexa was swept up with all the duties which had piled up during her absence. As much as Titus had tried to keep everything covered, there was still much which needed Lexa’s immediate attention. She still kept her promise to Marie and made sure to spend time with the girl in private daily. She had also taken back up training with the conclave on a daily basis as well and Marie now joined the other children at this time.

Anya herself was not doing much better than Lexa was, being the head of a small troop and tasked with a lot of military duties, training Ontari and Marie and planning the adoption ceremony with Lexa, the general had her hands more than full.

As good as Marie’s mood had been at their arrival in the capitol, as quickly the child had suddenly seemed to have turned moody.

Marie had still been animatedly telling Ontari all about which had happened at the Boat People after she had enjoyed a bath, where she in fact had bugged the older girl as long as until Ontari had agreed to sit next to the bath tub, so that Marie was able to continue her seemingly endless narration. Lexa and Anya had watched their daughter handle the Ice Nation nightblood with open amusement. It was plainly obvious that Ontari was not that interested in hearing just how many times Marie had swum in the ocean or other details the blonde child did not seem to run out of any time soon. But Ontari did obviously not wish to silence Marie and instead just occasionally inclined her head or made a little noise of recognition, signifying that she was still listening.

But as soon as Anya had proclaimed that it was time to recline for the night and leave Lexa in peace, Marie’s mood had visibly plummeted. The girl had tried to argue with Anya, telling the general that she wanted for them to stay within the commander’s quarters. But Lexa and Anya had already agreed beforehand that it would be best for Marie, Ontari and Anya to move back into their original sleeping quarters and Anya was resigned to the fact that they would be met with at least some level of resistance from the girl. She hoped that Marie was feeling stable enough now that her nightmares would have declined to a manageable level. If the girl would fail to find restful sleep, then they would have to consider other sleeping arrangements, but she was set on at least trying it out for a few nights.

Lexa had tried her hardest not to let her resolve to adhere to their decision break when Marie turned her huge grey eyes on her and she could have sworn that the girl was close to bursting into tears. But where she felt herself waver and repeated her offer to Marie that the child could always come to her, no matter the time or the reason, Anya had little visible sympathy for their daughter and sent the girl out of the commander’s quarters with a decisive growl.

Ontari had watched the scene in utter silence, dark eyes hefted onto the floor, not wishing to be pulled into the ongoing argument. She still found it astonishing how well Marie was able to manipulate the commander and she was absolutely sure that the young Trikru woman would have indulged the blonde child if Anya had not insisted on her original order.

Much to Anya’s frustration, Marie had adamantly refused to go to sleep and stayed awake for hours after being told to go to bed. She had contemplated on asking the girl to join her in her own bed, but had decided against it in the end. Marie was no toddler after all and she should somehow be able to sleep alone. Risha had of course followed them into their quarters and had joined Marie in her bed. Anya had watched the girl for hours petting the wolf non-stop instead of going to sleep. She did count it as a very minor victory though that the girl stayed within their quarters and did not go back the commander’s quarters.

During the following day Marie’s mood was rather uncertain, too. The girl was overjoyed at the fact that they joined Lexa for breakfast and that she was allowed to go to the nightbloods’ training session as well. But the girl turned visibly sad when Anya left them to go and inquire about the warriors of her unit.

Lexa watched the girl as closely as possible during the next days. Marie seemed only really happy when she was surrounded by herself and Anya. The girl did not seek out too much physical contact outside of their quarters, but as soon as they stepped inside, the child seemed to gravitate towards them, until she sat between them on the couch in the commander’s quarters.

When Lexa had heard from Anya about how badly Marie had slept – and it had continued for the next nights in the same fashion – she had convinced the general that they would need to change their arrangements again. She agreed with Anya that letting Ontari reside within her quarters permanently was not a feasible solution. She had also spoken with Titus and Ontari herself about it. The Ice Nation nightblood did not care all that much for having to move in with the rest of the conclave, but the girl was actually older already than most nightblood children ever grew to before the next conclave had taken place. So, Lexa had decided that it would be the most sensible solution to allow Ontari to inhibit a room on her own. The girl could learn a few more responsibilities with that too. Anya agreed that her older charge should be fine in a room on her own, she had after all not insisted on Lexa or even Tris to always sleep with her in a room either.

Lexa was slightly confused as to why Marie had not once sought out her private quarters in the nights so far and she felt that something was holding the girl back, but she could not pinpoint where the problem might be. It would be irrelevant once Anya and Marie moved back in with her. She had just observed a few handmaidens setting up a room for Ontari. All the quarters on the top of the tower were in use, so she had decided that the Ice Nation nightblood would best be housed in the floor directly beneath them. That way Ontari would still be close by and under constant guard as protection.

So far, she had not been able to bring up the matter of the adoption with Titus. She had wanted to, but the timing had never seemed right. Lexa knew well enough that she could not put it off for much longer though.

Anya had insisted that they would have Leilani brought from TonDC to Polis for the markings. The old woman had already done Marie’s other tattoo and she had also done one for Anya herself before. Lexa had sent out a rider to summon the woman a few days ago and was expecting her back in the next few days. She hoped that the journey would not be too much of a strain for the old woman. Marie had not asked after the adoption so far, but Lexa highly doubted that the girl could have forgotten about it already.

Marie was currently at the stables accompanied by Ontari and Anya had just joined Lexa in the commander’s quarters. Handmaiden were bustling around them, adding the general’s and Marie’s belongings to the big room under Lexa’s guidance.

“Have you told her yet?” Lexa asked the general just as the woman had entered the commander’s quarters.

Anya rolled her eyes – she could not really understand why Lexa had asked her to keep it as a surprise to their daughter that they would move back into the commander’s quarter – before she assured the younger woman “I have not. Her mood was already falling at the prospect of having to go to bed soon.” She watched the commander order for a smaller table to be set up for Marie and how it was quickly stocked with all the girl would need to either write, study or do some drawing at it. She shook her head slightly “Do you not think that you are overdoing it?” she questioned with a raised brow and her voice was tinted with criticism.

Lexa’s lips thinned visibly at the open jab and she decisively shook her head “Marie will surely not train the whole day. She needs some other ways of entertainment too” she reasoned easily, not willing to budge even a little. She could have thought of more things than a few art supplies. She had already asked one of the vendors of Polis who she knew designed games for children – although they were more rarely bought – to send her a collection of his crafts. She had also organised for a number of books more suited for Marie’s age to be brought up to her quarters. A craftsman was expected to bring another shelf for Marie’s things and she had asked him to give it a colourful painting too.

The routine would surely change again now that Anya and Marie would be staying with Lexa. But so far, they had all eaten breakfast together – Ontari included – in the commander’s quarters. Afterwards Lexa took Marie and Ontari down to the meadow on which she trained the nightblood children – seeing their visibly thinned out group still pained Lexa deeply – after which Ontari and Marie were collected by Anya. Anya continued her own lessons with her two charges until midday and they had so far eaten lunch together out in the city. Ontari joined the other nightblood children afterwards while Marie either stayed with Anya to watch her train her unit, visit the stables or go into the tower to sit in on meetings with Lexa. After that Marie usually returned to the commander’s quarters and she had begun her studies of the journal of the first commander again in that time; Titus had thankfully not insisted on her having to read it down in the temple any longer. Lexa usually joined her some time before dinner and they would spend the time until dinner was served alone, mostly curled up with Lexa reading a book to Marie. Dinner was eaten together in the commander’s quarters again and Marie would immediately after wish to get on the couch with both Lexa and Anya around her, preferably for Lexa to resume reading the book to her.

They were able to hear Ontari and Marie near the commander’s quarters before the two girls were in sight. Marie was giggling about something and Ontari looked almost affronted for some reason, but both girls visibly sobered when they noticed that something was obviously going on in the commander’s quarters.

Marie frowned, her brows creasing together in obvious confusion; the handmaidens had not yet finished completely with organising everything. Her eyes widened a little once she recognized some of her own clothes being folded into a new smaller wardrobe which had been added to one wall of the big room. Hope visibly shone within her grey eyes as she looked over at the two women, her gaze switched between Lexa and Anya for long silent moment and her voice was definitely tinted with a mixture of joy and hope “We are moving back in, are we not?” excitement filtered into her tone too.

Lexa inclined her head in agreement “Yes, Anya and you will reside with me permanently” she explained with a slight smile tilting the corners of her lips upwards.

Marie squealed in a high-pitched tone, jumping in place in utter excitement and she quickly bounced over to Lexa and Anya, throwing her arms around them and hugging each woman for a moment. Once she pulled back though, her expression had darkened a little “But what about Ontari?” she asked with a raised brow and her lips were pressed into a slight scowl.

Anya snorted under her breath “Ontari will have her own room from now on”.

Marie’s scowl remained in place “She won’t stay here?” she questioned, clearly not impressed with that aspect of their new arrangements. She wanted all of them to be together and Ontari was part of their family in her eyes.

Lexa shook her head “Ontari cannot sleep on the couch forever, Marie, and she is old enough to get the privilege of her own room” she tried to reason with the blonde child, but her green eyes also held a small warning as they drifted over to the Ice Nation nightblood. They were extending a privilege and a sign of trust towards the girl by allowing her a single room and she expected Ontari to act accordingly, but she was satisfied enough when the dark-haired girl slightly inclined her head in mute acknowledgement.

Marie pouted slightly, not entirely convinced yet that Ontari could not just stay in the commander’s quarters too. What if the older girl actually wanted to stay here, rather than being alone? Marie herself would not want to have to be alone through the night. She backed off totally from Lexa and Anya, stepping back over to Ontari. She looked up at the older girl, grey eyes scrutinizing and head tilted to the side “Do you actually wanna be alone?” she asked in a soft tone.

Ontari blinked down at the younger girl, stunned silent for a moment as she was totally caught off guard by Marie’s deep compassion and thoughtfulness. She did not take it for granted at all to be asked for her opinion on the matter. She had not minded having to sleep on the couch in the commander’s quarters before, but in all honesty the thought of having a room just to herself had a certain exiting appeal to it and she would not recline it. Ontari nodded her head in agreement “I am totally fine with having a room for myself” she reassured the younger girl, giving her a kind smile.

Marie kept on scrutinizing Ontari for another moment, before she nodded her head as well and the almost blinding smile returned to her features as she turned back around to Lexa and Anya “Thank you, thank you, thank you” she chanted joyfully, going back to them, to hug both of them again.

Anya slightly rolled her eyes at the girl’s overly dramatic antics, but the smile tugging at her own lips belied her feigned annoyance.

“And you have not even seen what I have all ordered for you” Lexa addressed the girl. Her green eyes shone gently as she led the girl over to the smaller table just for her and the colourful shelf, filled now with a few books and a few toys as well.

Marie’s grey eyes widened visibly as she took in the things which were obviously meant for her. She had never possessed more than one book at a time on the Ark and her mother had always exchanged it for another after some time. She knew that books were also extremely valuable on the earth as well. Most of the books from the old world had been destroyed and with most people not able to read at all, getting your hands on an intact book was not easy at all, so she knew that Lexa had gone through some effort to be able to present her with this.

“That is all for me?” she exclaimed chirpily, grey eyes still scanning over all the things in wonder and she smiled brightly when she noticed the art supplies. She hoped that she could still ask Clarke to teach her some drawing techniques though, the older girl was really talented and she was sure that she could learn much from her.

Lexa inclined her head in agreement and she had crouched down by now to be on the same eyelevel as Marie and she was nearly knocked over when Marie abruptly turned around and launched herself at the commander.

“Thank you sooooooo much” Marie said, hugging the woman closer “Love you, Mommy!” she added a little too loudly.

Lexa winced a little at the girl’s over excited raised tone, but her expression remained gentle “You are more than welcome, little star” she assured the girl easily.

Alira interrupted their moment only shortly later, bringing in dinner. Marie still retained her smile through the complete dinner. She did not seem to notice either how Anya kept on shooting her slightly dark gazes, as she continued to sneak little bits of her dinner to Risha, much to the wolf’s obvious pleasure.

After dinner was over, Anya brought Ontari into the girl’s new quarters, giving her a few instructions as to how she expected her to behave. The girl could from now on chose herself if she wished to eat breakfast and dinner with them together, with the conclave or on her own. Ontari had nodded along through everything. Her quarters also contained a small private bathroom, so she could find everything which she needed. The rooms and the corridor were guarded frequently, but she knew that it was not really to keep her watched, but rather to keep her protected.

Anya returned to the commander’s quarters some time later. She felt assured that Ontari would be fine on her own, although she had also told the girl that she would be welcome to seek them out at any time if needed. Just because Ontari was years older than Marie, did not necessarily have to mean that the girl could not just wish for company or have something she wanted to address immediately.

Marie smiled at Anya when she saw the general enter the commander’s quarters. She corrected herself internally, it was “their” quarters now and her smile widened a little more, before it declined again and she looked up at Lexa – having been leaned against the woman on the couch, feet tugged under herself – grey eyes questioning “What about the adoption?”. She did not think that the commander or the general had forgotten, but she knew how busy both women had been directly after their return to the capitol.

“We are only waiting for Leilani to arrive at the capitol” Lexa assured the girl quickly, not wanting the child to get the idea that they might have doubts about the adoption because of the wait.

“Oh” Marie exclaimed and she frowned a little “She made my other tattoo, right?” she answered. It astounded her how long ago that already felt now.

Anya inclined her head as she sat down on Marie’s other side “She will mark each of us with a tattoo to mark our union as a family” she explained “It is part of the adoption ceremony in Trikru”.

“What kind of tattoo are we going to get?” Marie asked curiously, grey eyes flicking back and forth between both women.

“We will all get the same design” Lexa answered “Something which will symbolise all three of us individually in a union.” She had not yet thought too much about the particular design, but she still had some time to come up with something. She also thought about asking Clarke to help, but she was not sure yet if she wanted to ask the blonde woman for something, bringing them back into closer interactions.

Marie nodded in understanding, trying to picture how such a tattoo might look like. Her gaze was hefted onto the flames dancing in front of them in the hearth and she barely noticed how her eyelids began to drop and she dosed off.

Anya slightly snorted under her breath “She outright refused to sleep the last nights and now she is asleep immediately” she rolled her eyes.

When Lexa saw the older woman reach out to Marie, she shook her head “Let her dose until we retire” and she only reached out to a thin blanket on the side of the couch and gently covered Marie’s sleeping for with it, bending down and placing a light kiss on the girl’s forehead. She could barely wait for Leilani to arrive at the capitol and make their bond official. She winced a little at the thought that she still needed to notify Titus, but she would do so in the morning, there would be no more procrastination.

 

 

Chapter 265

It was obvious already after the first evening after their change in sleeping arrangements, that Marie absolutely loved their new arrangements and was ecstatic about the fact that she and Anya would truly remain within the commander’s quarters. 

“We are not going to move out again immediately, right?” Marie checked; head tilted slightly sideways looking up at Anya with her big grey eyes expectantly. Currently they were waiting for Lexa to finish getting ready in the bathroom for the day to start breakfast together.

“No, we are not” Anya assured the blonde child in a calm tone, trying to keep her patience with the girl together. Marie had not asked the question only once before, but already at least five times while she had assisted the girl in braiding her hair. Her blonde hair had visibly already lengthened again after it had been cut short by Nia long weeks ago, it was still nowhere near as long as it had been, but progress in growth was definitely visible.

“So, we are going to keep on living here?” Marie repeated basically the same question, just in a rephrased version, her tone clearly indicated how important the answer still was to her. In her head she had added a “forever” to the question as she did not want to think about having to move into a single room like Ontari had done last night.

Anya breathed out heavily through her nose, jaw clenched together in rising annoyance. She truly had no idea what could have gotten into the girl through the night. Marie had happily cuddled awkwardly with both of them at once last night before falling asleep only shortly later still in this rather seemingly uncomfortable position and the girl had not even twitched once through the whole night.

“Yes, we will” Anya finally answered a long moment later, breathing in deeply and breathing out slowly afterwards, trying to calm herself.

Marie’s grey eyes narrowed slightly at the general. She did interpret Anya’s annoyance in another way and thought that the woman might not be truly honest with her. She did not know what could be wrong though, maybe Anya was just not in the best mood this morning, but Marie could not truly quit the small voice in her head, wondering just what she might have done wrong to cause it.

Lexa came out of the bathroom just in time to catch Marie answering the same question yet again in different words, her brows furrowed when she noticed the unmistakable annoyance within Anya’s expression though.

“Marie, one last time, we are going to stay within these quarters for now” Anya retorted while her voice took on a definite hard edge.

Marie’s lips thinned slightly “You keep on saying “nor now”” she argued back and it did not seem as if the general’s warning glare did even have the slightest impact on the blonde child “So, it will not be forever then” she added almost defiantly.

Anya’s brown eyes blazed with simmering anger, she could definitely not understand what had all of a sudden gotten into the girl to make her this stubborn, and the child had rarely displayed such stubbornness before.

The commander stepped away from the bathroom’s door quickly and over to Marie, placing her hands gently on the girl’s shoulders as to not startle her needlessly “What is this really about, little star?” she inquired in a kind tone, but kept her green eyes taxing the girl calmly.

Marie squirmed under the scrutinizing stare for a moment, before the defiance melted from her features, being replaced with worries and insecurities, before the words almost bubbled from her mouth “What if you get tired of me suddenly? Will I need to sleep alone then, too? Or what if you do not…”.

Lexa tightened her hands around the girl’s shoulders, giving them a slight squeeze to silence her worried rant. Her gaze had taken on an assuring gentleness while she crouched down in front of the girl, bringing them on the same eye-level “Marie, you worry for nothing. I will not suddenly change my mind and kick you out of my quarters. You will surely one day wish to have your own room…” Lexa held up a hand to silence Marie wanting to protest “…but as long as you want to sleep here, you will always be welcomed, no matter what you might have done to anger me”.

Marie’s hesitant answering smile looked almost sheepish, while Anya rolled her eyes at the girl’s antics.

To the general it made little sense as to why the girl kept on being so insecure. They had assured her more than enough times to last a lifetime from her point of view that they were not suddenly going to change their mind. She had truly never met someone who had needed as much reassurance about being wanted as Marie obviously needed. Anya internally hoped that the adoption would finally put a stop the child constantly doubting her place with them, there was nothing more binding than this ceremony after all.

Marie bit at her lips uncertain as to what to say now, feeling both women watching her at the moment.

Lexa sensed how uncomfortable being scrutinized made Marie feel, so she gave the girl’s shoulders another squeeze, before she casually stood up again and sat down so that they could finally begin with their breakfast.

Just in that moment, Alira returned to the commander’s quarters as well, waiting to braid the woman’s brown locks into their usual braided style.

“A group from TonDC has just arrived at within the tower” the handmaid relayed while she carefully combed out the young commander’s damp long hair.

Marie’s ears immediately perked up and the uncertainty left her features, being replaced with unmistakable excitement “So, we can have the ceremony?” she asked in a hopeful tone, grey flitting back and forth between Lexa and Anya at an almost alarming speed, trying to look for the women’s reactions.

Lexa’s face showed gentle amusement at the child’s clearly overly excited antics and she nodded her head, trying to keep the grimace from her features as she still needed to tell Titus.

Marie smiled brightly at the, grey eye shining with joy. She would officially once again have a family after today.

As if summoned by the commander’s thoughts Titus asked for entrance into their rooms only a moment later.

Lexa quickly sent Marie to Ontari’s room – the older girl had not shown up yet to breakfast and there was more than enough left on their table to share with the nightblood and she honestly did not want Marie to be present for the upcoming discussion – Marie visibly frowned at the abrupt order but complied with it once she noticed the underlying strictness in the woman’s green-eyed gaze.

The flamekeeper watched the blonde girl gather a few things in almost awkward silence, he knew the commander well enough to guess for her intentions as to why she was sending her overly beloved protégé from their rooms, he was still slightly sore to not have even been informed of the as it seemed now permanent change of sleeping arrangements.

Lexa waited until Marie had left the commander’s quarters and even waited a few more moments until she could hear the girl’s soft footfalls falling silent as she walked away from the door, before she spoke up “Later today Anya and I will perform an official adoption ceremony with Marie”. Lexa proclaimed her words in a decisive tone, green eyes blazing provocatively at her former teacher.

Titus blinked a few times, obviously for once stunned into absolute silence and it was if there were gears turning visibly within his mind trying to process the words his ears had just heard. When the meaning fully registered into his mind, his features visibly darkened. He might have found some appreciation for the blonde Skykru girl, as hard as he may have fought against that happening, but having the girl being adopted by the commander was just unthinkable. He did not care for what the general was planning to do, for all it meant to him the Trikru woman could go ahead and adopt all of the orphans living within Polis.

“You surely cannot mean to do that, Lexa” he finally breathed out, nostrils flared and teeth clenched together in seething anger.

Lexa quirked a brow at the man, she was not asking for his opinion on the matter after all, but merely informing him of her own plans. “I very well do” she retorted in a hard tone “and it is not up for discussion either. Marie does not pose any threat to the flame or the next conclave. She does not bleed black…” she paused for a second and unmistakable pain flashed over features, clouding her eyes for a moment “…we have nearly lost her forever and I do not care for any arguments you might have against this ceremony happening, because it will happen. This is something that I will do for myself, my duty as the commander will not be compromised by it at all”.

Titus shook his head in utter disbelief “No commander before had a family and with good reason. To be commander is to be…”.

“…alone” Lexa cut into her former teacher’s words, hearing the phrase for what felt to her like the millionth time, but her expression did not falter, she would not let him sway her mind now “Just because if was never done before, does not make it impossible. There will never be progress, if we stick to how something was always done. I will not change my mind. The adoption ceremony will take place tonight. I am done having to hide my feelings for the girl” she added the last part with a little venom.

Titus huffed out a clearly frustrated puff of air, the vein on his forehead visibly throbbed to his heartbeat, showing his rising annoyance with the young leader.

Anya watched the flamekeeper’s obvious turmoil with an immense amount of internal amusement and her lips had curled into a smirk, unable to contain all of her amusement. She knew that Titus actually did not have any power about Lexa’s decision and so he would not be able to prohibit the ceremony from being done.

Titus jaw was clenched tightly and it seemed as if he was grinding his teeth in mute frustration, recognizing by the unyielding look within the young woman’s green eyes that all the arguments he could think of as to why this should not be happening would just fall on deaf ears.

~ ~ ~

Marie left the commander’s quarters with a slight frown; it had not happened often yet that she was sent from the room when there was a conversation about to happen to which she was not allowed to remain present. She could only remember it happening before as Abby had wanted to speak with the two women about her condition.

She firmly shoved all doubts as to why she had been sent from her mind though, instead focusing on her joy at the prospect of the ceremony happening now in only a few hours of time. The delighted smile had returned to her features by the time that she reached Ontari’s new room and she quickly knocked on the door, barely waiting for a second before she already pushed it open.

“I bring breakfast” Marie immediately proclaimed in a chirpy tone, smiling at Ontari.

The older girl had sat up quickly in the bed and tried to get down from it, nearly stumbling as the furs had tangled around her legs during sleep. A dagger rested in her hand, ready to pounce on anyone who would attack her. Ontari lowered the dagger immediately once her still slightly tired mind registered that it was only Marie standing in front of her and no actual threat.

Marie giggled at Ontari’s expression and placed the small tray with food on the table, before she turned back around and inspected the room for a moment. It was much smaller than the quarters they had shared before with Anya. But it contained all the necessities and even had a small balcony.

“Did you sleep well?” Marie asked looking back at Ontari and letting herself fall dramatically on the bed.

Ontari watched the younger girl with a slight frown and only nodded her head in agreement. She had obviously slept too well actually and had overslept, but it did not seem as if Marie had been sent to her to scold her for her tardiness, but she guessed that the commander and general were busy at the moment and their morning training would just be delayed by some time.

“You know what is happening today finally?” Marie had rolled over and was now lying on her stomach, head probed up by her hands and she looked up with shining eyes.

Ontari sighed slightly under her breath, not yet in the mood for guessing games, so she just shook her head.

Marie pouted visibly “You have not even tried” she said in a slightly whiny tone, giving the older girl an innocent look.

Ontari rolled her eyes “Fine” she breathed out “Are we going on a hunt?” she indulged the younger girl, sitting down at the table and immediately starting with breakfast.

Marie shook her head “Try again!” she prompted chirpily, excitement returning to her features.

Ontari rolled her eyes again with a huff.

Thankfully Marie’s patience seemed to have run out and she blurted out “Lexa and Anya are going to adopt me today!” voice slightly shrill and high.

Ontari needed a moment before she nodded her head, she had already heard that this was planned, but somehow, she had not been so sure that it would really come to pass. “You seem happy about that” she finally commented after a prolonged and definitely awkward silence, not that sure on how to respond.

Marie’s blinding smile had visibly faltered in the silence and the girl seemed brooding “You don’t think it is a good idea, do you?” she questioned, doubt colouring her tone strongly.

Silence settled over them again for a moment, while Ontari carefully contemplated her next words. She knew after all just how important all of this was to the blonde girl. “It is uncommon to happen” she reasoned carefully “I cannot remember ever having seen such a ceremony being done and definitely not with the commander involved”.

Marie’s mouth pulled into a frown “Do you think Lexa will get problems because of me?”. She had not formulated that question to Anya or Lexa, fearing that they would not tell her the truth on the matter anyway.

Ontari looked indecisive for a moment “I really do not know, but I doubt it” she answered truthfully. The Trikru commander had managed to ally all the clans behind herself and unite them, somehow it almost seemed as if everything this woman set out to do would somehow work out.

Marie nodded after a moment, deciding to just hope for the best. She did want to call both of them her moms and it being real and official. As she thought about that and remembered that they were getting tattoos, another thought crossed her mind. She knew that on the Ark people who got married and in her mind this sort of was something similar, exchanged wedding bands as a sign of union. So, she now wondered if she could come up with something similar. She knew that actual rings would be impractical, but maybe a necklace or some other piece of jewellery could work. She did not know when the ceremony would take place today though, so she probably did not have that much time left to organise something. She quickly stood from the bed, already buzzing with excitement “You need to go down to the market with me, right now” she proclaimed loudly, looking at the older girl expectantly.

“I doubt that we should…” Ontari started to formulate a denial to the child’s plea.

But Marie did not let her finish, shaking her head “Gustus will surely come with us” she reassured, although she did not really know if the burly guard would agree or not. She guessed that the man would, if she explained as to what she had planned.

~ ~ ~

In the end, Marie was correct.

Gustus fortunately was not on guard duty at the moment, but the man was visibly surprised to see Marie with a begrudging Ontari in tow, knocking on his door and he had to strain his ears to make out the rushed words of the girl asking him to accompany them to the market to organize some sort of gift for the commander and general.

Marie tried to discuss with Ontari on what she could get for Lexa and Anya. It was obvious pretty quickly to Gustus that the Ice Nation nightblood neither really understood the need for any kind of gifts nor had she ever needed to think of one before and seemed even more clueless on what to advise the younger girl on than Marie herself was.

Gustus had to hold back a few comments at Marie’s almost comical ideas. The child seemed to have gotten it stuck in her mind that she on the one hand did want to get some sort of jewellery which they all could wear in addition to their markings and on the other hand the girl seemed steadfast to present her future moms with actual practical gifts, as if she needed to thank them for adopting her. When he truly heard the girl reason to Ontari that this was her intention in a way, he stopped both girls, in the middle of the market and pulled Marie off to the side to speak to her.

“Marie, you know that you do not need to come up with some absurd gift to show off your talent and prove your worth” he intoned in a kind voice, looking down at the blonde child intently.

Marie looked up at the girl man with a conflict raging within her grey eyes. A part of her knew that Gustus was right and Anya and Lexa did not need her to proof anything to them, but another part of her wanted to show them that they would not need to regret going through with the ceremony later.

“We shall go and search for the jewellery you have in mind” Gustus proclaimed after a moment of silence, he doubted that the girl would just agree to his input.

Marie nodded her head in agreement, but the look in her eyes clearly portrayed that she would not let go of the ideas of gift altogether, but maybe she could do it at another time. Her attention was quickly caught back by the market around themselves. It was still relatively early in the morning and most vendors still readied their stalls for their sale during the day.

The first stall which Gustus knew to sell jewellery seemed to have been specialised to craft jewellery with various gemstones, but it mostly sold necklaces and none of them particularly caught Marie’s attention. The man leading the stall also could not offer to her to craft a specific design for her, so they moved on.

Marie had more luck at the second stall. The young man working there really took a great effort by sitting down with the girl and trying to sketch the design she had described to him. Marie had wanted to sort of have a smaller version of her original tattoo, as it already contained symbols for all of them. A tree, with a sword for Anya, the commander’s symbol for Lexa and star in the leaves of the tree for Marie herself.

Marie excitedly watched the man carefully trying to ingrain her wished design into three identical bracelets. In the end, the man unfortunately had to see that he would not be able to make a recognizable tree with all the details. So, the bracelets were now ingrained with the intricate patterns of Lexa’s and Anya’s Trikru tribal tattoos, which were wound around a sword and stars were around that. Marie was more than satisfied with the result and she profusely thanked the man, barely containing her excitement to be able to present the bracelets to Anya and Lexa, really hoping that the two women would like them and agree to wear them too. She had actually not wasted too much thought on the question of what happened if they did not wish to wear them at all and she refused to do so now.

“I can barely wait” Marie joined Ontari and Gustus who had patiently waited for her with a blinding smile and her steps visibly bounced with excess energy. Soon, she would once again have a real family.

Hi guys,

This is as far as I have come with writing; due to personal reasons this story will sadly be put on hold now. I don’t know when or if I will continue it. I hope that you have enjoyed the journey with me up to this point. To the reader who has been my greatest support through the last few months, thank you so much, without you I would have abandoned this way sooner. I hope that you will find whatever you are looking for.

There may come a point in the future where I feel that I can continue Skaifaya, but right now I am unable to do so. A great thanks to all of you and I am incredibly sorry for probably leaving this unfinished, this had never been my intention.

 

 

Chapter 266

Clarke had returned to the capitol a few days ago now with the commander and the rest of the group who had been at the Boat People’s place. Getting back into her routine as a healer in Polis was easy, but it still felt different in a way. Previously she had been convinced that there would be a chance for her and Lexa to reconcile, which had justified her continued stay in the capitol. But now that this was not going to happen, Clarke was not sure any longer if her time to return to her own people had not finally come.

She had spoken to her mother over the radio and Abby had told her that Jaha had miraculously returned to Arkadia a few weeks ago, her mother seemed to be worried about him though. She had also been told that Octavia had visited Arkadia with Lincoln and was expecting a baby. Clarke had not really been surprised by that piece of news, the dark-haired girl had been madly in love with the warrior and she wished them all the best in the world.

Her mother hand sounded less than pleased about the fact that quiet a large number of the original 100 had by now chosen to leave Arkadia. As the tensions between the clans had lessened and more and more clans had been swayed into at least begrudgingly trusting the newest addition to the coalition, trade had begun to be established between Arkadia and a few of the clans. While none of the grounders so far had chosen to remain in Arkadia, a part of the delinquents had chosen to leave Arkadia and live with the grounders instead, most of them had integrated into Trikru, but her mother had told her that around ten of them were now living in other clans as well. Clarke could not really begrudge them of their decision, she had not been with her own people for months now after all and she was not yet sure if returning to them would be temporary or could turn into moving back permanently.

Monty had told her that during their absence from Polis there had been word from the king of Azgeda. Roan had obviously been true to his promise and had his warriors search through their lands for the remaining people from Farm Station who had still been kept prisoner by the last fanatic followers of his mother. Roan’s message had proclaimed that around fifty Sky people had been found in Ice Nation lands and were currently being escorted back to Arkadia.

Clarke could only begin to imagine through what kind of hell these people had gone through since their landing on earth and in what constitution they would be. She guessed that her mother and Jackson would highly appreciate it, if she would be there in Arkadia when these survivors arrived and she also sensed that these group could pose a real danger to the peace they had worked out. She still remembered how openly hostile Pike and his supporters had been towards Lexa and actually every grounder for that matter. It was more than likely that these people would even be extremer in their opinion of the grounders. She knew enough about politics by now to have understood that it just took a little minor instance of affront between the clans to destroy their trust and possibly cause another tension which could lead them directly into the next war, which was something she absolutely had to prevent. She did not wish for Lexa to have to worry about another possible war so soon, she wanted for Marie and her moms to have as long of a peaceful time as possible, all of them more than deserved it.

Her mother had of course also subtly tried to ask again if she would finally return to Arkadia, once Clarke had told her that she was not in a relationship with the commander any longer.

Clarke sighed under her breath and continued to fold together her clothes. She had asked to have a short audience with the commander, wanting to inform the brunette personally that she was planning to leave the capitol. She had already told the healers who she worked with, that she would be gone for an undefined time again and she hoped that word would not have reached the commander yet about that. Clarke did not know if the young leader was keeping taps of her like that or not, but she regarded it as possible at least.

A knock at her door, made Clarke pause for a moment “Enter” she called out loudly. She had grown used to the way around the tower and how to act around the people who worker here.

She was surprised when it was not a handmaid or a young servant who entered, but the commander herself.

Lexa remained standing beside the door “You wished to speak…” she started in a neutral tone, but paused when her green-eyed gaze fell onto the bed and she recognized that the blonde was obviously packing her things “You are leaving” she assessed calmly.

Clarke nodded her head in agreement “Yes, I had just wanted to inform you personally” she explained a little lamely.

Lexa’s brows raised slightly in honest confusion “You do not need my permission or approval to leave the capitol, Clarke” she retorted calmly. She would have felt a little better for Marie’s sake if the blonde remained within the capitol. The woman knew if Marie’s healing powers and no other healer was privy to that information yet, but she would not ask Clarke to remain here either.

Clarke nodded again “I was not going to ask for that, but merely informing you” she exclaimed a little hotly and surprising herself with the reaction. She was probably tenser about returning to her people than she had cared to admit to herself just yet. She had not been back to Arkadia on her own choice since the Mountain and she had felt at home in Polis, she feared that she would not find that ever in Arkadia.

Lexa’s brows furrowed together and slight alarm passed through her green eyes for a moment. She knew this reaction from Clarke, the blonde tended to lash out at the slightest provocation when she was already tense and she was fairly certain that it had to do with her return to Arkadia. “You will always be welcome to return to the capitol, Clarke” she tried to reassure the blonde in a kind tone and she meant every word of it.

Clarke’s lips tilted into a smile “Thank you, Lexa” she retorted, truly thankful for the reminder of the offer. Her heart felt heavier somehow now as she gazed at the brunette in a moment of silence. She still felt deeply for the commander and she doubted that the depths or the way of her feelings would ever change, they would in a way forever be connected to each other. “So…” she began with a sigh “…this is goodbye for now” she stepped closer to the commander, blue eyes swimming with melancholia.

Lexa stretched out her arm towards the blonde, offering it for a goodbye in real warrior fashion, clasping forearms as they gazed into each other’s eyes for long seconds “May we meet again” she said solemnly, truly hoping that they would meet again in the future.

Clarke swallowed forcefully and inclined her head “May we meet again” she echoed and she gave the commander’s forearm a squeeze, before she let go and gave the brunette a smile. She watched the commander leave her room in silence, before she sighed once again and turned back towards the bed, to finish packing up her things.

~ ~ ~

Marie was still brimming with absolute excitement when Gustus brought her and Ontari back into the tower. She hoped that Lexa and Anya had not already wondered where they had been these past hours, having the bracelets done had taken much longer than she had thought possible and she also hoped that the ceremony would happen immediately, she did not wish to wait any longer.

Gustus had learned from guards on their way up the tower that the commander was currently in the throne room and he brought both girls to it, taking back up his place at the leader’s site.

Lexa had been in the middle of a meeting with the ambassadors and she had noticed already that Marie and Ontari had not been at the training session and she had guessed that the girls had just joined Anya in her training of her own unit, but the general had returned to the throne room without the girls as well.

She had not been able to call off the meeting though and Gustus had also not been seen, so she assumed that he would be with Marie and Ontari. She had still worried in the back of her mind, but she was fairly certain that Gustus would have a good reason to be with the two girls and would have long sent word if something was wrong.

Lexa’s eyes narrowed though when she truly looked at both girls. Ontari wore a look of what she could only describe as guilt and a heavy conscience, while Marie was obviously fidgety and nervous beside the older nightblood girl.

The commander held up her hand, stopping the Plain Riders ambassador midsentence in his report about the status of his clan, stood from her throne quickly and motioned Marie to the balcony.

The blonde girl looked definitely nervous now as she trudged over to the balcony, lower lip caught between her front teeth and grey eyes flitting between the commander and the ground at her feet.

Lexa waited until Marie had passed through the door, before she closed it behind them quickly, giving them a moment of privacy. Her green eyes quickly scanned the child over for any new injuries, with Marie she had almost come to expect disaster lurking behind every new corner for their daughter. Lexa internally mused why they even let the girl out of their sight at all anymore, the child would surely be saver under constant surveillance.

“Are you alright, little star?” she questioned the girl in an urgent tone, lightly tilting her chin upwards so that she could look into her grey eyes, while her second hand squeezed the child’s shoulder.

Marie nodded her head in honest confusion and she felt slightly guilty for obviously having caused the woman to worry after her again.

Lexa looked up, when the door was opened behind Marie and Anya joined them on the balcony. The general also appeared worried, obviously having had similar thoughts to her own.

“Where have you been?” Anya asked, voice definitely several degrees sharper than Lexa’s had been and her brown eyes carried an unyielding hardness. The child did not appear physically harmed after all.

Marie’s mouth opened and closed a few times without an actual sound coming out and she felt the bracelets weigh heavily in the pocket of her coat. She had originally wanted give them to the bracelets after the ceremony, but she could probably present the two women with them now.

“I got something for you” Marie revealed, tone slightly low, feeling her nerves again. It was entirely possible after all that they would not like the bracelets at all. She fiddled with the bracelets in her pocket, looking between both of them, mouth drawn into a slight frown.

Lexa and Anya bandied a confused look at the girl’s antics, both clueless what their daughter was referring to.

Marie bit at her lips for a moment, before she finally took the bracelets from her pocket and slowly revealed them to the two women, looking between them unsurely. When none of them reacted immediately, she tried to explain “I know you said we would have matching markings after the ceremony. But you know…” she stopped for a moment, beginning to nervously play around with the bracelets in her fingers “…on the Ark couples exchanged wedding bands as a sign of the bond and I thought we could do something similar. And I know that rings would be impractical to wear at training and I don’t know if you would even wear jewellery at all. But I thought it would be nice and I hope that you like them. I have come up with the design together with the man at the stall and I don’t know if you like them and he was not able to do exactly the design I wanted, but look…” Marie rambled on, barely taking a second to breathe between her many words. “… they are now ingrained with the intricate patterns of both of your Trikru tribal tattoos and the sword stand for you” she looked over at Anya “… and the commander’s symbol and the stars represent me. All united in one design. I hope you like them. It is alright if you don’t…” Marie’s expression clearly showed how important it was to her though that both women would approve of her design.

Lexa’s green eyes clearly showed her appreciation for the child’s gesture and she quickly reassured their daughter “They are perfect, little star”. She would also gladly wear this piece of jewellery if it meant so much to Marie. Wearing jewellery was not really customary among their people, but she saw absolutely no reason to deny the bracelet.

Marie smiled slightly at that and her grey eyes flitted over to the general, waiting with a baited breath for the woman’s reaction.

Anya was deeply touched by the girl’s gesture as well and her expression had turned loving and open, while she reached out and took one of the bracelets from the child’s fingers and brought it closer to her face for closer inspection. The design had obviously been done with great care of the details. Once she had inspected it, she handed it back over to Marie.

The child immediately appeared crushed by that and she lowered her gaze with a deep frown.

“You have chosen a really thoughtful design” Anya complimented the girl, forcing her chin back up with an insistent finger and she kept her expression open and gentle “We can use the same design for the markings” she suggested with a slight smile.

“You really like it?” Marie checked with both of them unsurely.

Both women nodded their heads in mute agreement and Marie immediately smiled brightly and almost jumped into the space between them, throwing one arm around either of their waists and giving both of them a weird one-armed hug.

“When are we going to get the markings?” Marie asked excitedly once she stepped away from them again.

“We shall begin as soon as the meeting is over” Lexa answered easily. The design the girl had come up with would require for the marking to be relatively big, so getting them inked into their skin would undoubtedly take some time. She squeezed the girl’s shoulder one more time, before she stepped back over to the door, wanting to end the meeting as soon as possible.

The clans seemed to have done reasonably well during her absence and no knew tensions had risen which would require her immediate attention.

Marie still smiled brightly and minutely leaned against Anya, before the general motioned her to return into the throne room behind the commander as well. She tried to curb her smile her joyful expression at least a little once they were inside again, aware of all the eyes watching them curiously at the moment. But it was nearly impossible not to smile so bright that she thought her cheeks would surely hurt the next day. She just felt so unbelievably happy at finally officially being Anya’s and Lexa’s daughter.

Thankfully, she still remembered that the previous marking had barely hurt, although she had been rather afraid that it would. So, Marie now did not worry about the actual marking process too much.

She had asked Anya before how a normal adoption ceremony looked like. But the general had told her that such a ceremony was rarely done. It simply was not needed as the grounders did not value labels and names in such a way that it would matter.

So, in a way Marie thought that Lexa and Anya would mostly go through with the ritual for her sake, but she would not question that right now either.

During the rest of the meeting, Marie barely could sit still at all. Her whole mind seemed to buzz and she just wanted to run around and move.

Anya had placed a hand on her constantly fidgeting legs halfway through the wait and thankfully the general had not appeared truly annoyed by her inability to just wait quietly right now.

Marie did not even attempt to listen to the different ambassadors speaking one after the other in front of the commander. She had listened to the beginning words of one of them and had registered that they seemed report on the status of their own clans, but their speeches were not able to catch her attention for longer than a few seconds at the moment and Marie impatiently waited for the last ambassador to speak, which just happened to be Monty.

She did try to listen to his words though and she frowned slightly when she heard that people who had been kept as prisoners from Farm Station in Azgeda lands were being escorted to Arkadia. Marie briefly wondered if she would know any of them. She had been born in this station after all and although she had not had too much contact with many people, it was still possible that she could know some of the survivors.

Thinking of Farm Station, allowed Marie’s thoughts to drift to Maura. She had not seen her friend in several months now and she really wanted to see her again. During their time at the boat people, Marie had loved to be able to play with Aria and now she truly missed Maura. She hoped that there soon would a possibility for the other girl to visit Polis or them to travel to Arkadia.

Marie exhaled a loud sigh once Lexa finally called an end to the meeting and the ambassadors quickly filed out of the throne room one by one. “Can we start now?” she asked quickly, immediately jumping up from her chair in an excited manner.

Anya slightly snorted under her breath at the girl’s clear impatience, although she had to admit that she was also growing impatient by now.

Lexa nodded her head with the hint of a smile tilting the corners of her lips upwards and she asked Ontari who was intending to join the rest of the conclave to signal a guard on her way out to have Leilani and the two others send to their quarters.

They had not spoken about how big they wanted the design for their markings to be, so Lexa had in preparation of a larger design, summoned two other people who were well versed in marking the skin. Or having Leilani mark all three of them could have easily taken a day for each of them.

“We can already return to our quarters” Lexa proposed and stood from her throne.

“What kind of ceremony is there going to be?” Marie asked on the way from the throne room, only noticing now that they had never explained it to her.

Anya shook her head in the negative “We are already bound to each other as first and second. Getting the markings done will suffice in that case” she explained.

Marie mulled the woman’s words over in her mind for a while. She actually was not sure right now if she should be disappointed about the lack of a sort of ceremony or festive, but she guessed Anya was right and they already had been bonded to each other in a way.

~ ~ ~

Leilani approved of the design for the markings too and they had decided together to get it done on their left arms and it would nearly span over the whole upper arm.

Three chairs had been placed around each other and Marie sat in the middle and Leilani would be the one to do her marking.

Marie quickly remembered why she had been tired during the last and only marking she had received. It did not hurt at all, but to her it rather felt soothing. She was holding Lexa’s right hand with her own and the marking went over in silence, which only increased how tired Marie all of a sudden felt.

Lexa occasionally asked the girl if she was alright and she only stopped doing so, when she noticed how the girl’s grey eyes were already beginning to fall close.

Anya had her eyes closed as well and only opened them again, when Marie suddenly spoke up.

“You will be my moms officially after that, right?” the girl checked looking between them.

Lexa and Anya both nodded in agreement. “We will put your bracelets on then too” the commander added in a gentle tone, which only made Marie smile brightly again.

The tiredness won out over the child sometime during the marking though and Marie dozed off, tattoo only halfway down.

“From her sleeping habits, I would say that we adopted a bear instead of a girl” Anya commented drily into the silence.

Lexa smirked slightly in amusement, but she vehemently denied Anya to wake their daughter “The markings will still take a few hours. Let her sleep through them if possible”.

Anya rolled her eyes at her former second and the hint of a grimace settled onto her features. Now that they would officially both be considered a mother to Marie; they would surely need to work out exactly which rules they would want their daughter to adhere to. But she shooed that thought away for the moment, those were worries for tomorrow.

 

Chapter 267

A few days had passed now after their adoption ceremony and they had been anything but easy. For some reason the ceremony and the finality of the adoption had turned Marie clingier and the child was visibly against being left alone even for five minutes, going as far as not wanting to go to the bathroom alone. It had been obvious right from the first morning after the ceremony that Anya’s patience with the blonde girl’s antics was limited; the general had more than enough duties and the child’s constant need for physical closeness was unsettling to the woman. Lexa was coping with the girl’s behaviour better than Anya was, offering the child as much of her time as she could and spending it with her alone in their quarters. But both women were pretty busy, having been gone from the capitol for several weeks during Marie’s sickness had made the work literally pile up.

Now that the girl was physically declared as healthy again, Anya insisted that she needed to get back into training as soon as possible. Ontari had trained together with the rest of the conclave during their absence, but the general was not truly satisfied with what the flamekeepers had made her train. It made little sense in her mind to allow the Ice Nation nightblood to remain within her comfort zone, always fighting in training with the weapons she had already mastered. She knew that Ontari could only make progress, if she worked on the things she was not fully experienced in yet. Both girls still had huge deficiencies in their theoretical knowledge and so could be instructed together in that fields.

~ ~ ~

“Don’t you want to go and see the foal?” Anya questioned Marie with a slightly raised brow. She had just finished the first training session between Ontari and Marie. The nightblood girl was expected to join the rest of the conclave now, while Anya had planned to work with her unit. During their absence from the capitol, more warriors from different clans had volunteered to solely fight for the commander, regardless of their origin and Anya now had to assess who of them she could actually need. She had already spoken to Lexa about the idea to form several divisions of elitist soldiers just bound to the commander. No previous commander had reigned long enough for something like that to have been established, but it seemed that Lexa was deeply beloved by her people, so both of them expected more volunteers to show up in the capitol as the time passed.

Marie frowned slightly, wiping at her sweaty forehead with the sleeve of her shirt. Ontari had already left them and it did not appear as if Anya was planning to leave the training grounds. “You’re not coming?” she asked in a quite insecure tone.

Anya’s lips thinned visibly at her daughter “You are very much capable of visiting the stables on your own” she gave the girl a pointed look. She had enough of the child being glued to their sides constantly. She could not understand why Marie was so clingy now. She would have assumed that the adoption would finally drive it home to the child that her place with them was safe and final, frustratingly, the opposite seemed to be the case.

The child would not even have to go completely on her own, as Risha was resting next to the training fields and would surely trot behind her human as soon as Marie moved away. The wolf had been a constant shadow to Marie since their return to the capitol, as if the animal was afraid that her human could be leaving again if left alone.

Marie pouted at the general’s sharp undertone. She honestly wanted to visit the stables again. She wanted to check how the foal had grown and how the horse with the broken leg was doing currently. But she was not blind and word had spread like wildfire through the capitol about the adoption ceremony between her, the general and the commander. Most people surprisingly enough seemed to accept her new connection to their leader with respect, but she was afraid of those who did not accept it. She knew all too well from her experience with the Ice queen that not everyone was favourable towards her. She had heard Titus cautioning Lexa about what might happen after the adoption after all and she sadly knew that the flamekeeper’s words carried at least some truth.

But she had also heard Lexa and Anya argue about her just this morning. The general seemed fed up with her clinginess and Marie was afraid that the woman would grow even more distant, if she continued to push her. She did not want to be the reason for her mothers to argue with each other, she wanted all of them to be happy with each other.

So, Marie forced a decisive expression onto her features and straightened herself. “Okay” she intoned in a surer voice than she felt “Will you come and collect me for lunch?” she added in a softer tone.

Anya gave the girl an encouraging smile “Yes, I will come to the stables right after I finish here” she promised, internally relieved that their daughter finally agreed to do something on her own. The child did not need to know right now that there would be a pair of guards shadowing her from a safe distance, but the girl needed to feel secure enough in the capitol that she would move through it on her own. They did not want her to become reckless, but Marie was no toddler and needed to get more independent again.

As predicted, the wolf immediately got to her feet the very moment Marie turned from the training pits and fell into step directly next to her human. Anya gave the pair of guards who had been waiting on the corner of the streets a mute nod to follow the blonde child, before she turned her attention back to the training pits and let her eyes shift over the new potential members of the commander’s unit. It was a mixture out of both genders and all clans as far as she could tell.

~ ~ ~

Marie moved through the streets of the capitol with fast strides, wanting to reach the stables as soon as possible. For some reason, she felt safer there than out in the open like this.

She frowned deeply when a man suddenly blocked her path and one of her hands went to the dagger fastened to her thigh for protection. She let it drop again when she noticed a small boy standing directly in front of the man and her expression turned questioning, mutely wondering what they could want from her.

The man noticed the pair of guards almost hurrying towards them now, so, he crouched down behind his son, making the situation appear less threatening. “My son wants to gift something to you” the man finally said after a moment of silence in a throaty tone.

“Oh” Marie breathed out in surprise and a shy smile settled onto her features as she turned her grey eyes solely onto the small boy in front of her. She judged the boy to be around Boo’s age.

For the comma’der’s new child” the boy said in a rushed obviously excited tone and held out a band in his round fist, opening it finally directly in front of Marie’s face.

Marie cautiously took the band from the boy, inspecting it carefully and she immediately recognized that it must be proposed to be used as a hair tie. It had a similar red hue to Lexa’s long red sash and the commander’s emblem had been stitched carefully into the centre of it.

Thank you” she answered with a smile “It is beautiful” she added after a second, before she immediately tied it around a part of her hair. She would ask Lexa or Alira later if they somehow could integrate the new hair tie into her hairstyle in a way that the emblem would be on display as well.

The young boy smiled brightly at her when she immediately fastened the tie into her hair.

“Come on” the man began to gently urge his son away, now that he had given the commander’s daughter his gift.

Wait” Marie addressed the man, an idea flashing through her mind “Have you done the emblem?” she questioned in curious interest.

The man inclined his head in acknowledgement.

Marie smiled a little brighter “Can you teach me how to do that?” she asked excitedly. She knew that it would not be long now until she had officially been the commander’s and Anya’s second for a year and she wanted to present both women with personalized gifts for the special occasion. She guessed that she could easily gift a coat or shirt to Anya, but she wanted to gift Lexa with something else as the woman was mostly always dressed in the commander regalia.

The man seemed perplexed by the question, but he nodded his head in agreement “It is not that hard to learn” he assured the blonde girl in a kind tone.

Marie’s expression was positively excited now “Where can I find you?” she questioned. She would probably need to at least tell Gustus or maybe Alira or Ontari. She knew that she needed to arrange for some form of payment and she did not own any money.

The man described to her where he lived with his family and he promised to keep silent about Marie going to visit him when she quickly told him that she wanted to prepare surprise gift for Lexa and Anya.

The little boy seemed thrilled with the concept of meeting her again too, asking her if she would be telling him some stories about her time in the sky.

Marie agreed easily, knowing that she would just need to be a little cautious about what she told them about Lexa, but she doubted that there could be any harm in telling them about the Ark. She was used now to people being fascinated with living in space after all.

She left in the direction of the stables with a renewed self-confidence. She was touched by being gifted something and welcomed like that. She knew that she would be a fool for thinking that everyone would welcome her like that, but she at least hoped that the majority of people were positive about her new role in their society.

Marie left Risha at the entrance to the stables, telling the wolf to wait for her there. The horses would probably still not react too well to the wolf’s presence and she did not want to stress them unnecessarily. She could already see the stable master standing in the middle of the large stables, obviously instructing two new people wanting to work there.

She gave the man a nod in greeting, but did not stop to talk to him, instead she immediately went over to Skairasha, looking into the stall and spotting the foal standing next to its mother.

Skairasha came closer to the fence and Marie reached out to pet her enormous head gently in greeting, giggling slightly when the horse blew out a deep breath directly into her face, tickling her with it.

“Have you missed me?” she asked in a gentle tone, scratching alongside the mare’s soft nose.

As if the horse had been able to understand her question, it seemed to nod its huge head, before it stopped moving again to enjoy the girl’s caress.

Marie smiled at the horse and her smile turned into a laugh when she heard what she would classify as a complaining neigh from the other side of the row of stalls, where Anya’s brown mare was looking at her.

“I’ll come to you in a moment, no reason to be jealous” she called over her shoulder in a light tone. Marie remained at Skairasha’s side for longer though, just as she wanted to turn away from the stall, the foal began to get interested in her presence as well. She tried to bend over the fence as far as she could, but the foal remained out of reach.

“I doubt you will have luck in touching it” the deep voice of the stable master startled Marie suddenly and she had to catch herself before she lost her balance and fell over the fence altogether.

Marie’s disappointed frown turned into a slight pout. She wanted to be the first one to have contact to the foal, Lexa had promised that it would be hers after all. So, it sounded logical to her that she needed to be the one to form a bond to the young animal.

“How is the broken leg healing?” she inquired curiously, grey eyes falling down the row of stalls to the one which had held the injured mutated horse before they had left Polis.

The stable master nodded his head “It has mostly healed as far as we can tell. The horse should not have any complications from it” he relayed his assessment.

Marie smiled at that piece of information “Can I ride it soon?” she asked with growing excitement. Lexa and Anya both had cautioned her already that such a wild horse would definitely not be easy to be ridden like the horses she had been assigned before, but Marie was confident that she could handle the horse.

“I don’t know if you can” the stable master retorted drily “But it can be ridden soon” he added after a moment.

Marie’s expression faltered at the dry wit and she turned away from the man, walking over to the general’s hazelnut mare instead and finally greeting the horse as well, much to its obvious pleasure.

She stayed with the mare for long moments, before she gave it one final pat and walked to the end of the row of stalls and was immediately greeted by the dark horse, all three eyes were trained on her.

The dark horse had trampled around a little restlessly at the sound of Marie’s approaching footsteps, but now it was calm again and Marie climbed onto the fence, so that she could reach out and offered her hand palm upwards to sniff at to the animal.

“You’ve been good” she acknowledged in a whispered tone, letting her fingers softly caress over its velvety nose “Will you be good too when I try to ride you?” Marie asked curiously, gazing deeply into its dark eyes.

The horse of course could not give her any answer, but Marie continued to gently caress it for a few moments. She spotted a few carrots in a bucket in front of another stall and quickly retrieved a large one, breaking it into pieces and offering one to the horse.

Marie giggled under her breath when the horse ate the first piece directly out of her palm, its lips tickling on her palm. She continued to feed the horse in silence, unbeknown to her being watched by the stable master.

The man was once again surprised with how compliant the mutated horse behaved with the blonde girl. None of his men would have attempted to feed the beast like that and he was fairly positive that the horse would have just bitten them if they had attempted the same. He could not pinpoint what was so special about the blonde child, but something clearly was and the horses were sensing it.

He had heard about the adoption between her, the general and the commander too of course, but he had been anything but surprised by the news. He had seen both women around the child and the love between them was almost palpable. He had already instructed his two new apprentices that the commander’s daughter was always allowed in the stables at all times. Security had been increased after Ontari had killed one of his apprentices and abducted the commander’s second months ago and it had not been lowered since.

Once she had fed the complete carrot to the horse, Marie stepped back from the stall and returned to Skairasha. She glanced over her shoulder; the stable master was busy showing something to his apprentices. Marie knew that the commander’s mare would not hurt her and she still wanted to touch the foal. So, without much further contemplation, she climbed over the fence to their stall.

Marie remained pressed against the fence and offered both her hands to Skairasha, the horse’s ears had laid back at her intrusion and she was suddenly unsure if her move had truly been wise.

Thankfully, Skairasha seemed to decided that she was indeed no threat and Marie breathed out a relieved bout of breath. She remained in a corner though, understanding that the mare would probably not react too well if she moved closer to the foal.

Marie decided on trying to wait patiently instead and actually sat down cross-legged in a corner of the stall cushioned by the straw on the ground of it.

Her patience paid off long moments later, when the foal curiously came closer to her.

Marie’s hands twitched at her sides, wanting to reach out and touch the young animal, but she sensed that she would only shoo it away. So, she tried to stretch her patience out longer instead.

She was rewarded when the foal stood directly in front of her, sniffing at her face. The giggles the move elicited from Marie did not shoo the animal way, so, she assumed it as safe to reach out now.

“Hi” she greeted the young animal in an extremely soft tone and her smile turned bright, when the foal remained in front of her and allowed her to touch it.

~ ~ ~

The stable master seemed openly surprised, when Anya came to the stables a long time later to collect her daughter and they found her still sitting in Skairasha’s stall with the foal’s head actually on the child’s shoulder. The man had not noticed Marie climbing into the stall and had assumed that the girl had left without his notice, but Anya had found Risha waiting for Marie still.

The general remained standing in front of the stall for long silent moments, simply taking in the view in front of her. Both, Marie’s and the foal’s, eyes were closed and the child looked utterly at peace. Only the fact that her fingers were softly moving along the foal’s neck indicated that the child was awake at all. She was glad that sending the child off alone had obviously worked out so well. As soon as Marie had left the training grounds, she had felt unsure about her decision, torn between wanting the girl to be confident on her own and making sure that the child was alright. But it was obvious now, that it had been the right decision.

Marie must have sensed being watched and her grey eyes opened a moment later, a shy smile settled onto her features at spotting Anya waiting for her and she slowly got to her feet, pressing a soft kiss between the foal’s eyes in farewell, before she accepted one of Anya’s hands to help her climb easier back over the fence.

“Did you have a good time?” Anya questioned the child in a kind tone. She had placed one hand on the girl’s bony shoulder, guiding her out of the stables, noticing the new hair tie in the girl’s hair with a slight frown of confusion.

“Yeah” Marie answered in an excited tone, telling the general quickly about meeting the little boy and his father. She carefully left out, that she would be meeting them again though, instead switching to how well the mutated horse was healing and how she had waited for the foal to approach her.

“You did well” Anya acknowledged in a tone laced with pride and gave the girl’s shoulder a squeeze. She breathed easier now, knowing that nothing had happened. She knew that Marie would probably need a few more positive experiences like this to slowly diminish the dark ghosts of her past, but she was positive that the girl would heal with time.

Marie threw a smile over her shoulder at the general and she shily reached out towards the woman’s hands on her shoulder, pulling it down and interlacing their fingers cautiously. She smiled bright with her grey eyes twinkling, when Anya allowed her to walk through Polis holding her hand like that.

 

Chapter 268

Marie followed Anya out of the stables with a slight skip to her steps and a smile on her features. She had to conceal her internal excitement about the gift she wanted to make for the general. She wanted to keep it as a surprise, but now that she was in Anya’s company, she felt the excitement bubble in her mind. She had no idea how long her plan would need to be executed and she still needed to think of a gift fitting to Lexa. She wondered if maybe Ontari could have an idea, if Clarke would still have been in the capitol, she could have asked the blonde woman, but Clarke had left and returned to Arkadia.

Marie’s smile lessened at the thought of Arkadia. Immediately, she had Maura in front of her internal eyes. She still spent time with the remaining nightbloods, but she was missing Nymo, she had been closest with the boy and although Ontari was great company, the older girl refused to engage in what she regarded as “childish prank”. The time they had spent at the Boat People’s oil rig had been so different from the more regulated daily life in Polis, that Marie now missed the opportunity to just spend time with playing and she knew that she would have a much greater time with Maura or Luna’s daughter here.

She was aware of the fact that Anya and Lexa still tried to take as much time out of their daily duties as possible to spend it with her, but spending time with her moms was still largely different from spending time with friends.

Marie sighed slightly under her breath. She highly doubted that it would be possible for them to travel to Arkadia, so shortly after they had returned to the capitol.

“What is going through your mind?” Anya questioned the girl suddenly. She had watched the emotions quickly flicker over her daughter’s face and she was still watching her closely, looking out for the little cues which gave Marie away, if the child attempted to lie.

Marie shrugged her shoulders with the hint of a frown, annoyed by the fact that the general was reading her so easily.

“You know well enough that shrugging is not an appropriate answer” Anya chided the girl in a kind tone “So, spill” she demanded a moment later.

“You’ll think it stupid” Marie retorted with a slight whine to her voice. She highly doubted that the general would be understanding of her feelings. Anya was once again all about duty, training and lessons and Marie knew that she had to fulfil a certain role as the commander’s daughter and her second as well, but she was still wishing for something more.

Anya narrowed her eyes at the girl. They were still outside of the tower, so she urged the girl back inside, further away from listening ears. “I want to know regardless” she addressed her daughter again just as they stepped inside of the elevator.

Marie sighed again “I think …” she began and paused for a moment, looking up at the woman with her grey eyes filled with sadness and longing “…I miss how it was at the Boat People…” she said and added as a whisper “…or before”.

Anya frowned down at the girl, trying to decipher what exactly the girl could mean. It was obvious that she had spoken her true feelings and they seemed to be intense as well, but Anya did not understand them. “We can travel there again” she tried to appease the child with a promise.

Marie nodded, but her expression did not really light up at the concept. “Do you know when Monty will return?” she asked out of the blue. The boy had accompanied Clarke to Arkadia, to visit his friends and speak in person with Kane about news of the developments ongoing in the newest clan. Marie had written a letter to Maura and asked Monty to deliver it to her friend, hoping that the other girl would write her a reply as well and she was impatient to hear how her oldest friend was doing.

“In a few days” Anya answered in confusion. She knew that Marie had gotten to know the ambassador of Skykru when they had been sent down to earth from the Ark, but it had not seemed as if there had been a close connection between them and she could not remember if her daughter had spent any time with the ambassador.

Marie nodded in acknowledgement. She knew that there were no super important meetings scheduled as a few ambassadors had left the capitol to visit their loved ones in their original clans. Lexa had explained to her that she had tried to install a sort of pause in the clan meetings during times of peace to offer the ambassadors times to leave the capitol and not miss anything important. She guessed that Monty would have to return in time for the next meeting and she knew that it was at least a week or more until it was scheduled, she had forgotten the exact time.

Her thoughts were interrupted by Risha pushing her nose against her fingers as she had let her hands hang beside her sides. Marie smiled again as she let her fingers card through the wolf’s soft fur.

“Hi Gustus” she greeted the burly man standing guard in front of the commander’s quarters, indicating that Lexa most likely had already returned from the private lesson she had had scheduled with Aden and Ontari.

Gustus nodded his head in greeting at the young girl. The corners of his lips turned into the hint of a smile as well. The child appeared relatively confident how she stood beside Anya, Risha nearly glued to her knee, smiling at him kindly. He was relieved that the child was obviously very well recovering now from everything she had been put through.

“Mommy!” Marie almost squealed as she spotted Lexa sitting on the couch in front of the fireplace, looking through some sort of reports.

Lexa’s concentration was immediately broken by Marie’s certainly loud appearance and she put down the report, already expecting for their daughter to race over to the couch and launch herself into her arms. Marie had been doing exactly that for the last few days since she had resumed her training with Anya.

Her prediction became true and Lexa quickly caught the girl, before Marie could hurt herself and she smiled gently at the girl, feeling her smaller arms wound around her torso.

Marie enthusiastically hugged the woman while she heard Anya follow inside of their quarters and close the door behind herself. She held on for long moments, breathing in Lexa’s unique soothing scent and feeling the warmth of her body seep through her clothes, before she let go again and backed away slightly, still touching the woman.

Lexa gently brushed a blonde strand of hair from the girl’s forehead, taking in a new bruise forming along the girl’s jaw, probably curtsy to the training session in the morning, and noticing the unfamiliar hair tie woven in the girl’s hair. “Did you have a good day, little star?” she asked the girl in a kind tone.

Marie slightly leaned into the gentle caress and she immediately launched into an excited narrative about her day.

Anya had sat down beside Lexa and Marie on the couch and attentively listened to the girl describing their training to her previous second, switching to the meeting with a little boy who had gifted the hair tie to Marie. She noted how the child stopped suddenly in her words there and quickly switched the topic to her time at the stables. She wondered what the girl was trying to keep to herself, but she doubted that it would be anything to warrant them to worry.

~ ~ ~

The journey back to Arkadia had taken Clarke and Monty a few days. They had agreed to travel with horses instead of asking Raven or someone else to collect them from the capitol with a rover. Monty was not really a practised rider, so he had agreed that it would be a good opportunity for him to practise a little. For once, they had not been in a hurry during their travel. There had been no war looming over their heads and both of them had finally had the opportunity to truly appreciate the beauty of the nature around them.

Monty was internally a little anxious to return to Arkadia, even though he knew that it would only been a visit and he could only imagine how it felt to Clarke to return. Kitara had thankfully chosen to accompany him and he was looking forward to being able to show to the girl he had grown to love just how the Ark looked like. He had told her so much about living in space already, but he knew that seeing the remains of the Ark in person was still different.

He had heard that Clarke and the commander had settled on going separate ways now and although they seemed to have parted in good ways, he doubted that truly leaving the capitol had been easy for his friend.

Monty knew that there would be no one waiting for him. His mother was dead and Jasper had been banned from the lands of the clans. He wondered for a moment if his previous best friend was even still alive somewhere or if he had died, alone and helpless like that. He did not really know what outcome he would prefer for Jasper.

He had briefly spoken to Bellamy through the radio and it seemed that the boy had finally made peace with his sister. Octavia had moved to TonDC with Lincoln and only occasionally was in Arkadia herself and he had been told that the girl was expecting her first child. Kitara had laughed at his utter puzzlement at the news. Somehow, in his mind all of them still were the juvenile criminals sent from the Ark to see if earth was survivable. Hearing now that Octavia was going to be a mother soon, somehow made all the changes more real.

Monty glanced over at Kitara, riding beside him. On the horizon, he could distinctly already made out the shape of the Ark and he knew they would be arriving soon. He internally wondered if he would ever have children himself, possibly with the girl next to him and he felt his stomach roll slightly in anticipation. Taking over the role as the ambassador had already felt too much of a burden and a heavy responsibility, but the possible thought of a child of his own made him nervous in another way.

“I thought it had been larger” Kitara spoke up with a slight frown as she could finally see what must be the Ark looming in front of them. Monty had told her just how many people had populated this thing made of metal while they had floated among the stars and she could not imagine how crowded living in such a small space had must been like for them. She was used to the wide spaces of the forest in Trikru and although Polis had become heavily populated as well, the city was huge and ran out into the forest around it as well.

Monty snorted slightly under his breath “This is only part of the Ark. It had been much larger. This is only the remainder of Alpha Station, but the complete Ark consisted of twelve stations” he explained once again. He knew that he had told Kitara this many times before.

Kitara’s frown slightly deepened, trying to picture this thing in front of them several times larger, but she found it hard to conjure the image.

Arkadia has really changed” Clarke commented from Monty’s other side. It had been several months now that she had not been here and the last time, she had seen it had been when Anya had brought her here after her run in with the panther.

A few houses seemed to have been constructed surrounding the carcass of Alpha Station and fields had been pitched outside of the fence. Clarke was sure that the people from TonDC would have been of great help in the construction of the houses and the fields.

She steered her horse – a personal gift from Lexa – through the gate to Arkadia and she smiled when she spotted Bellamy standing alongside her mother and Kane waiting to welcome them and their entourage.

“Clarke” Abby immediately stepped forward once Clarke dismounted her horse and enveloped her daughter in a hug, after looking her over once. It was obvious that her daughter had fully integrated within the grounder culture and she was wearing grounder clothing and had her long hair braided out of her face.

Markus in the meantime greeted Monty and Kitara together with the few warriors which had accompanied them on their travels.

Lexa had sent a waggon with a few gifts, mostly food from other clans, a few weapons and tools, from the capitol and Monty officially handed those over to the leader of Skykru in his function as their ambassador.

“We have prepared a meal in the dining hall to welcome all of you” Markus thanked Monty for his gifts.

Their arrival had been noticed by other members of Skykru by now and a few people were filling out of the Ark.

A small group of children – the last ones which had been born in space – already came running towards them. Although all of them had already seen horses a few times now, the children especially were still enthralled by the animals.

Clarke smiled at them kindly. She knew that the horse Lexa had chosen for her was a friendly animal and she would not need to worry that there would be any problems. The horse seemed happy enough with the attention as well.

“How long are you going to stay?” Abby asked her daughter, as she let go of her and took a slight step back.

Clarke slightly shrugged her shoulders “For a while at least” she answered vaguely. Lexa had offered that she was always welcomed in the capitol, no matter the state of their relationship and the Boat People had been interested in her skills in healing as well. So, Clarke knew well enough that she had other options, but she would see how long she could stand being in Arkadia.

“I would hope so” Raven commented in a mock sharp tone, stepping up next to Abby and enveloping Clarke into a tight hug next “You have been gone too long” she said.

Clarke slung her arms around the brunette and answered her hug “I have missed you too, Raven” she answered with a smile.

“Of course, you have, who wouldn’t miss my shining personality?” Raven remarked with a little snark to her tone, being softened again a little by her smile.

Clarke rolled her eyes at the mechanic. She had truly missed Raven the most and she had enjoyed the brief times in which she had reunited with the other girl in Polis and during the war against Ice Nation. The grounders all visibly had been confused by Raven’s attitude and Clarke had been afraid that the mechanic could have caused an affront with the generals, but surprisingly enough the grounders had learned to just ignore Raven’s sometimes weird antics and her sharp tongue. Clarke assumed though that Lexa must have given the order that the mechanic from Skykru was not to be harmed.

Clarke frowned slightly when she noticed Jaha standing with a small group of people around him at one side in front of the Ark. No one of them seemed to be speaking, but they all were looking intensely at one point ahead of them. Clarke could not identify at what they were staring and she slightly shook her head “What is going on with Jaha?” she questioned. Her mother had already told her that the man was acting weirdly since his return and that she was worried about him.

Abby’s smile visibly lessened, while Raven looked shortly over to the group and rolled her eyes “He has turned completely loopy” the mechanic retorted “He is trying to distribute some weird “key”” she added.

“Key?” Clarke echoed in confusion, looking at her mother to see her nod in confirmation that this was exactly what she was so worried over.

“It’s supposed to be the ultimate salvation” Raven explained in a sarcastic tone “the way to the city of light” she added

Clarke looked over alarmedly at one of the warriors from the capitol who has his eyes narrowed at Raven with a dangerous gleam. Internally, she wondered if the man could somehow know something about this city of light.

“Do you know something about the city of light?” Clarke carefully questioned the warrior.

The young man marked with an intricate tattoo in the style of Trikru carefully nodded his head as he answered “It is a myth. People have tried to look for it beyond the death zone. The commander will want to know about this though” the man had added the last part under his breath and Clarke could see a flicker of the old suspicion against her people flash through his dark eyes.

Clarke nodded her head in agreement, the last thing they needed was for Skykru to get into further trouble with the coalition, there was only so much Lexa could do for them and she knew how much the Trikru commander had already adapted their rules for the sake of Skykru.

Maura suddenly appeared among the group of the other children, looking between Clarke and Monty with a little smile “Do you have news about Marie?” she wanted to know excitedly.

Monty nodded his head at the younger girl “I in fact have a letter for you from her” he answered kindly, searching through one of his bags for the letter and handing it over to the clearly impatient girl.

“Thank you” Maura chirped happily, grabbing the letter from him and immediately turning on her heel, storming away back into the Ark quickly, probably wanting to read the letter in the privacy of the quarters she inhabited with her mother.

 

 

Chapter 269

Marie managed to get Ontari involved into her plans for the gifts to her mothers, so that the older nightblood girl helped her “disappear” for certain times of a day during which she visited the man who had gifted her with the hairband.

The older girl clearly did not understand, why this kind of gifts were so important to Marie all of a sudden, but Ontari had seen how excited the younger girl was about the prospect of presenting the general and the commander with personalized gifts, so she had agreed to help.

Marie enjoyed the time which she spent with the little family in the capitol while she worked on her gifts. During her first visit the little boy, whose name was Callum, introduced her to his mother and baby sister. She had learned that the little girl was just a few months old now and Callum rolled his eyes dramatically every time his sister began to cry. It was more than obvious that he was not that thrilled to have a sister now.

Marie found the little girl extremely cute though and she was deeply thrilled when Callum’s mother offered during her third visit to the family, that she was welcome to hold the little girl if she wished. Marie had been immediately enthralled by the little girl, but what had truly been amusing had been Callum’s reaction to Marie holding his sister and cooing at her. The young boy had rolled his eyes and sulked moodily, complaining that his sister was once again getting more attention.

Callum’s father had insisted that she first needed to learn the different techniques of embroidery. Marie had not expected that there would be so much to learn and she was a little frustrated. She had wished to make quick progress with Anya’s gift, but she had not even gotten started on it yet. But she had acquired a number of little wounds on her fingers, where she had slipped with the needle and instead of pushing it through the fabric she had been given to practise with, pushed it forcefully into her own fingers.

She was slowly getting better at it though, which was a good thing.

Lexa had begun to question her on the appearances of her wounds, knowing from Anya that they were most definitely not from training. Marie had no idea now how she had managed to lie to Anya about the sleeping aid she had taken in secrecy, when Lexa had questioned her, she had actually blurted out “Please stop questioning me, mommy, you’re ruining the surprise”. To Marie’s great relief, the commander had only wanted to know if she was putting herself into danger with whatever she was preparing and when Marie had denied so convincingly, Lexa had not questioned her again on it.

“You truly think Anya and the commander do not know where you are going when you “disappear”?” Ontari asked in an almost amused tone, pulling Marie out of her thoughts. She was not blind and she had seen that guards were shadowing them unobtrusively; she was not sure if the younger girl had noticed them though.

Marie frowned at the nightblood with a slight pout “I hope not” she said and her pout turned into an almost accusative glare “Don’t say that you’ve blabbed to Anya?!”

Ontari rolled her eyes, internally affronted that the girl would assume such “Of course, not” she retorted in a sharp tone, looking straight ahead and refusing to look back at the blond girl.

Marie frowned again, sighing under her breath “I am sorry for assuming” she said honestly. She hated when Ontari was angry with her.

Ontari nodded in acknowledgement, expression softening slightly. They had reached their destination “Have fun then” she said as a farewell.

“I am sure you could come al…” Marie tried to offer, but Ontari stopped her midsentence.

Ontari shook her head with a slight chuckle “No, no, Anya is waiting for me on the training pits”.

“Okayy” Marie answered in a happy tone, turning her back on the older girl, knocking on the door once and entering without any kind of hesitation.

Ontari watched the younger girl disappear through the quickly closing door. Marie’s blond hair had grown again, it was of course still a lot shorter than before it had been cut off by Nia. It was nice to be able to see Marie walk through the streets of Polis without searching for a threat at every corner. The younger girl had grown more comfortable here again and she knew that the adoption had been part of that.

Anya had insisted on holding up training session with her alone as well, claiming that the two of them needed to work much more on the trust between them than the general ever would need with Marie and Ontari knew that the Trikru woman was speaking true.

She had learned by now not to question Anya on her training methods. So, Ontari did not argue when the general greeted her with a bow in hand, leading her away from the training pits, telling her that they would make a short outing to hunt. Internally, Ontari actually assumed that the general wanted to leave the capitol for some time again. She had seen that Lexa and Anya both had been busy with their duties since their return.

~ ~ ~

“Where are Anya and Ontari?” Marie asked once she returned to their quarters. She was holding a little piece of fabric around her pointer finger.

“Another wound, little star” Lexa assessed with a critically raised brow, noticing the fabric the girl was holding immediately “Wash that wound out now” she ordered in a kind tone, pointing towards the bathroom. She tried to finish quickly with the report she had been reading, wanting her attention free for her daughter.

Risha, who had been lying at the commander’s feet, stretched herself out, trotting behind her human. The wolf remained inside of the opened door to the bathroom, wagging her tail in anticipation.

Marie returned a moment later, drying off her hands on her pants, before she greeted Risha with a smile, kneeling down in front of the wolf, as the animal jumped around her for a short time, before the wolf jumped against her human’s shoulders, bringing Marie to her back.

Lexa put the report to the side, when she heard the slight noise of Marie falling onto her back. She had worried for the flash of a second, but Marie’s bright laughter nulled her worry immediately. She watched Marie squirm under the wolf for long moments, laughing freely, as the wolf licked along her face.

She was not surprised, when Marie immediately turned her attention towards herself, once Risha stopped her “attack”.

Lexa leaned back on the couch, making room for Marie and she was not disappointed, when the young girl sat down close to her, leaning against her upper body immediately.

“When will I continue to learn about the flame?” Marie questioned out of the blue. Since her return to the capitol, she had not received a single lesson on the topic any longer and she was wondering if the adoption might have changed something about her status.

“Do you want to?” Lexa answered with a question of her own. She had thought about this subject in the past few months quiet often. After Marie had returned from Ice Nation, it had not been wise to deepen her education in that field. The girl had fallen “sick” not too soon after and she wondered now what it was that the child actually wanted to do. “You know that you are not required to become a warrior, little one?” Lexa checked in a soft tone, before the girl could have answered her first question.

Marie frowned deeply, fearing that she was not performing well in training and that her moms might not consider her suitable any longer. She was their daughter now, so, she was not immediately worried that they may send her away. “But you are all warriors” Marie said slowly after a moment of silence with a contemplative expression, while she wound her arms around Lexa’s midriff, hugging her.

“Yes” Lexa agreed, placing one arm around the girl as well “I have not been able to chose my fate. My blood chose for me. You on the other hand, can chose if you indeed want to be a warrior. You have proven that you can fight. You can learn something else, if this is what you wish”.

Marie let her head lay on Lexa’s chest, simply being for the moment and not actually wanting to think about having to make life-changing decision. She could still sense Lexa waiting for an answer patiently “Do I got to chose now, mommy?” she asked in a slightly whiny tone.

Lexa chuckled slightly under her breath, brushing back a few lose strands of blond hair and tucking them behind Marie’s ear “No, little star, you can tell me about your day instead” she appeased the child.

~ ~ ~

“Marie, this is really getting ridiculous” Ontari tried to reason with the younger girl to no avail. “You have been working on your “gifts” now for over three weeks, believe me, Anya and the commander know very well where you disappear to”.

Marie rolled her eyes at the older girl, refusing to listen to her words. Her presents were finally finished and she had asked Ontari to accompany her while she fetched them. In the end she had decided on stitching a beautiful motive onto a belt for Anya and Callum’s mother had taught her how to dip candles and how to whittle them later.

She had actually made several different candles with Callum’s mother, but she had only used her full artistic talent on one of them, whittling it into an incarnate tree with stars in between the leaves.

“The gifts are finished now” Marie proclaimed proudly, ignoring Ontari’s seemingly rather bad mood for now “I need you to look if Lexa and Anya are in our quarters are not”.

Ontari frowned at the younger girl’s words, confused why she would need help with that at all. Usually the amount of guards standing on the corridor in front of the commander’s chambers was a good indicator for her presence and she knew that the general was done on the training pits for the day.

“By the way…” Marie continued speaking as if she had noticed Ontari’s questioning stare “…do you like having your own quarters?” she questioned. She still would have actually preferred for Ontari to be with them all through the day as well, but she understood her moms’ reasoning that Ontari was getting too old and needed more freedom.

Ontari raised a brow at the girl at the sudden change of the topic. “It is nice” she finally offered after a short moment of silence. She would not have minded sharing a room with the younger girl and she guessed that she would have gotten used to living with the rest of the conclave as well, but she definitely preferred having her privacy for a few hours of the day.

“Do you like being a warrior?” Marie asked another question. She had thought about the conversation Lexa had tried to have with her, but she had not been able to come to a conclusion. On the Ark, she would have probably gotten a job similar to her parents and here it seemed to work in a similar way. She honestly had no idea what she actually could become if she was not to be a warrior. She could imagine being a hunter, but Anya was still criticizing her lacking patience.

Ontari’s brows furrowed at the unexpected question. She had been brought to the Ice queen as a young child and she honestly could not clearly remember a life before that. It had never been a question that she would not be raised to try and become the commander. She had never considered if she actually liked the life, she had been fated to with being born with the blood of the commander.

“Why do you want to know this?” Ontari asked, not knowing how to answer the question. She knew that it made no sense to contemplate such questions.

“Mommy asked me if I actually want to continue the training as a flamekeeper and if I want to become a warrior at all” Marie recited in a slightly worried tone. She still did not know what to make of the question at all. She had thought about asking Anya about it, but she did not want the woman to doubt her intentions.

“Do you want something else?” Ontari asked after another moment of silence, keeping her tone low. She knew that the streets of Polis were not actually the right location for such a conversation.

Marie shrugged her shoulders “Don’t know” she answered with frustration filtering into her tone. She still did not even wish to truly think about this. She was afraid of how far reaching the consequences of the wrong choice could be.

Her thoughts were put to a stop, once they reached Callum’s home. Marie knocked again and her arrival had obviously already been awaited.

Callum seemed to be a weird mixture of happy and sad to hand over the finished gifts to Marie. “You going to visit again, aren’t you?” the young boy asked hopefully.

Marie nodded eagerly with a smile. She had liked spending time with the family “I would love to” she agreed, smiling at the young boy wildly before she thanked his parents again.

Marie was antsy with excitement as she joined Ontari back in front of the small house. “Do you think they will like them?” she questioned as her excitement dimmed momentarily with the thought that her moms may not even like her gifts.

Ontari snorted under her breath “I am sure you could literally gift them some sort of trash and they would be over the moon over it” she commented in an amused tone.

Marie frowned as her eyes gleamed for a moment. Her expression softened again once Ontari held up her hands in mock surrender and the older girl began to laugh openly. It took only a mere moment, before Marie joined in.

 

 

Chapter 270

“You are going to gift a candle to the commander?” Ontari asked, inspecting the things Marie was carrying, while she had been handed a small box as well by the younger girl. Marie had told her that the box contained other candles as well, even ones which were supposed to be able to swim in a bath. She did not understand why this was supposed to be a good thing. Who would want to put candles into water?

“Didn’t you think a dagger or such would have been a better gift?” Ontari tried to question the younger girl again.

Marie frowned at the older girl, glaring at her lightly. She had thought hard and long about what she wanted to gift to her moms and she had explicitly decided against her gift being a weapon. She knew that both of the Trikru women had more than enough weapons and she wanted it to be something which did not have anything to do with fighting. Ontari’s questions were beginning to grant on her nerves though. Before the nightblood had said that Lexa and Anya would surely be happy about anything she gifted to them, so why was she trying to make her doubt her gifts now?

“Have you ever gotten a gift?” Marie broke the silence again. They were just entering the tower now and she somehow sensed that there was more to Ontari’s questioning.

Ontari furrowed her brows at the younger girl. She thought back on her time with the Ice queen. She had been gifted with weapons on occasion, but she could not remember ever receiving anything else. She shook her head in the negative after a moment, waiting in front of the elevator with Marie.

Marie’s expression turned a little sad. She could remember her parents gifting her with something for each of her birthdays and Christmas as well. Lexa and Anya had also given her so much, also they had not really used the term “gift” if she remembered correctly. She watched the older girl for a few silent moments, coming to the decision, that she would be the one to give Ontari her very first gift then. She just first needed to figure out what she could gift to her and it would definitely not be a weapon either. She thought the older girl could use some form of hobby beside her training as a nightblood. Lexa seemed to put importance into reading and she had offered her things to do arts as well, maybe she could see if Ontari might like something similar.

Marie shook her head slightly, ending her train of thought “So, you will go ahead and look if Lexa and Anya are inside. If so…” she hesitated for a moment, noticing that she had actually not fully thought this thing through “…you stay inside. If they are not there, you can call me in and you need to wait outside then and stall Lexa and Anya if they return, before I am ready” she instructed the older girl, voice slightly high-pitched with excitement.

Ontari rolled her eyes at the younger girl’s excitement, but she was not planning on not helping her. She could have told Marie before she entered the commander’s quarters that they were empty. Enough time had passed with the heightens security measures and no incidents had occurred, that the numbers of guards had been decreased again. The coalition really seemed to have peace finally, although Ontari knew that it would be dangerous to expect this state to last indefinitely.

She motioned to Marie who had been waiting for her outside, waving her inside and she willingly left the room again, leaning against a wall outside. She hoped that the commander and general would not return while Marie was occupied as she had not thought of something to keep them from entering yet.

She was relieved when Marie stepped out a few minutes later again. It was obvious that the younger girl was eager.

“I can leave you waiting alone, right?” Ontari checked in a kind tone. She did not mind spending time with Marie at all, she liked that younger girl, but she would prefer not to be there when she gave her gifts to the commander and general. She was sure that it could easily become a quiet emotional scene and those still made her uncomfortable on some level.

Marie nodded with a slight frown “But you can stay, if you want” she offered, smiling hopefully at the older girl, but Ontari immediately shook her head and already turned around to leave. She watched her go reluctantly, she would truly have preferred for Ontari to stay. She did not understand why Ontari always seemed to flee from these situations.

She went back into their quarters after a few moments. She had arranged the candles on the big table, placing the prettiest one in the middle. She had even placed a ribbon around it and she had wrapped a ribbon around the belt for Anya as well and it was waiting on the table as well.

Risha must have accompanied Lexa to the meeting with the ambassadors. She had heard that today was the first meeting again. She had hoped to meet Monty, asking if he had an answering letter from Maura for her, but she had unfortunately missed the young man. She had knocked on the door to the quarters which had been assigned to him before her training session with Anya, but no one had opened.

She actually had no idea how long it might take for Anya and Lexa to return. It may be that Anya had joined the meeting of the ambassadors after training with her unit and she could imagine that the first meeting after the pause might actually take long.

Marie quickly became bored with doing nothing but staring at the door and trying to listen for the sounds of footsteps. She huffed in annoyance; in her imagination she would not have had to wait this long. She began walking through the room, searching for something to occupy herself with.

She noticed that first commander’s journal on the table next to the bed. Marie wondered since when it had been there again. She had not seen it in a long time and she had not spoken with Lexa again about her education as a flamekeeper. Maybe the woman had decided that she could continue with it if she wanted. She had not truly come to any decision, but she was sort of curious about what had happened after the bombs.

Marie picked up the journal, walking back over to the couches and she settled onto one of the comfy armchairs in front of the fire. She quickly took off her boots, letting them drop to the ground next to the armchair and she pulled a soft fur over herself, curling herself together comfortably on the armchair as she settled down to read.

~ ~ ~

“As if they are forgetting everything as soon as they leave the capitol” Anya remarked with an eye roll on the way to their quarters to Lexa, walking beside the young leader.

The ambassadors had been back to quarrelling between each other about the simplest little things and Anya’s patience had been wearing thin during the meeting. Lexa had sat through the meeting with her usual stoicism, not showing that she was as annoyed as her general was.

“I hope that Marie will return before dinner tonight from her little outing” Lexa exclaimed, not wanting to speak further about the meeting with the ambassadors. Some of the ambassadors of the outer clans had reported worrying changes in the wildlife in their lands. She also had gotten a letter from Clarke; Monty had handed it to her at the end of the meeting and the young man had said that they would probably need to speak about the contents tomorrow which honestly confused her greatly.

The guards in front of their quarters informed them that Marie had already returned some time ago, but everything appeared to be quiet in the room.

Lexa and Anya both were confused to spot the things from Marie on the table, but they failed to spot the little girl at first.

Risha had found her human immediately, but the wolf remained standing in front of the armchair, wagging her tail.

Anya had followed the wolf and the general remained standing in front of the armchair with a smile on her features. Their daughter had obviously fallen asleep while reading.

“Let her sleep” Lexa said in a soft tone, pushing Risha gently away from the armchair. Their daughter had slept pretty restless during the last night and the training had increased again now that her physical health was back to normal. She was internally relieved to see that Marie had been reading the first commander’s journal, proving that the child was interested in it without being told to read it. She carefully took the journal out of Marie’s lap, placing it on a smaller table. She gently adjusted the fur around Marie’s sleeping form as it must have slipped down a little.

Anya had stepped over to the table, inspecting the things Marie must have placed on it. She slightly shook her head at the things, feeling touched. It was obvious that the girl must been working on these things during the last weeks whenever she tried to disappear.

In the meantime, Lexa opened the letter from Clarke. As she read over the letter, her expression darkened visibly. Clarke’s words were cryptic, probably in fear that the letter may get into the wrong hands, but Lexa thought to understand what the blonde woman was trying to communicate.

“What is it?” Anya questioned once she noticed Lexa’s changed mood.

The commander mutely handed over the letter to her former mentor. It did not contain anything, which she needed to keep from the older woman.

Anya quickly read it as well “The city of light?” she recited a phrase which she had heard before.

Lexa nodded with a deep frown. Clarke had written that the man she had sent back to the Sky people with the message to leave their land and who had been gone from his people for months to look for the city of light, had returned, claiming to be able to distribute the key to the city of light. She had described that the people who had taken the key were acting strangely and she was worried. She had also included a sketch of this key and this had alarmed Lexa the most. The thing showed the commander’s symbol and she knew that Titus would be wanting to know about this as well.

“I want to travel to Arkadia soon” Lexa proclaimed, not waiting for Anya to finish reading the letter as well. Now that there was finally peace between the clans, she did not want anything to happen which could jeopardize this state so quickly.

Marie waking up a moment later, hindered Anya in saying anything to the letter. The blonde girl stood up quickly, almost falling over the fur in her haste and her surprise that Lexa and Anya were already there, quickly turned into disappointment “You should have not come inside yet” she said in a sad tone “I had wanted to surprise you”.

Lexa turned her full attention to Marie, giving the child a smile “What are these for, little star?” she questioned the girl in a gentle tone.

Marie shrugged a little awkwardly “I had just wanted to make you two a surprise gift, ‘cause your my moms now” she tried to reason, feeling insecure all of a sudden. She had not looked at any of them during her small talk, but had kept her gaze glued to the floor and she had begun to twist the hem of her shirt nervously between her fingers.

Little star, look at me, please” Lexa prompted the girl in a soft tone. Anya had folded the letter from Clarke back together and placed it on the table, looking over to Marie as well.

Marie looked up with a shy insecure expression, biting at her lower lip uncertainly. When she noticed both women smiling at her, her own mood shifted as well and she quickly rushed to say “Look” she hurried over completely to the table “I made a candle for you. It contains part of my tattoo” she pointed out and she opened the box as well, showing the other candles to both of them “but its too pretty to burn, I think, so I have others as well. Oh, and look…” she pulled out the smaller special candles “they can float in water in a bath. Isn’t that cool?”

Lexa laughed at the girl’s clear enthusiasm “It looks very beautiful, little star” she complimented her daughter in an honest tone, inspecting the biggest candle closer, while Marie turned to Anya.

“I have made a belt for you” Marie said, taking the belt from the table, before she officially handed it over to Anya “I stitched stars on it and flowers and trees and…” she quickly said “…I hope that it will actually fit”. She had had to judge Anya’s size and she was a little worried that it would be too small or way too large.

Anya accepted the belt and took a closer look at it “No wonder that you had so many little wounds on your fingers” she chuckled under her breath “and you made a very good job at it, little star”. She opened the belt, fitting it around her waist “It fits perfectly” she commented.

Marie smiled brightly “So, you like them?” she asked excitedly.

“Of course, we do” both of them agreed and Marie immediately hugged both of them hard. Her surprises had been a success.

“We do have a surprise for you as well” Lexa said in a kind tone.

Marie tilted her head to the side, waiting for Lexa to elaborate.

“We will be travelling to Arkadia soon” Lexa proclaimed. She did not find it necessary to tell Marie that there was a serious reason for their travel. She could imagine that Marie would love the prospect of seeing her old friend again.

As she had expected, Marie’s smile turned even brighter and she seemed to jump up and down in place for a moment in total joy, before she enthusiastically launched herself at Lexa again “Thank you, thank you, thank you, mommy” she chanted happily.

 

 

Chapter 271

Marie’s joy was a little marred when she asked if Maura had sent a letter back for her, but Lexa had not received another letter than the one from Clarke.

“You will see your friend in person once we travel to their settlement” Anya tried to raise the girl’s mood again. Clarke’s words had been alarming enough that she was fairly certain for Lexa to arrange their travel to Arkadia in the next days already.

Marie nodded with a slight frown, but she was diverted by Risha suddenly licking at her hands, trying to catch the attention of her human. She giggled when the wolf jumped back from her, all the while wagging its tail playfully at her.

Anya watched Marie and Risha with a slight shake of her head. It was astounding how the wolf was acting more like a dog than what it actually was. Marie had never met a dog before though, so, Anya wondered what had prompted Risha to act the way the wolf was doing. She knew that the wolf would likely be staying with them until it died of old age and she was glad now, that she had not insisted on Marie leaving the wolf alone in the woods around TonDC to starve.

“Are we gonna stay long in Arkadia?” Marie inquired, looking through the commander’s quarters for the sort of ball she had been using to play with Risha.

“I do not know yet, Marie” Lexa answered while she folded Clarke’s letter back together carefully and stored it inside her coat. She took off her coat finally and unlaced her boots. Dinner would surely be served soon. Internally, Lexa was debating the pros and cons of taking Ontari and Aden with them on the journey to Arkadia. She knew that Marie’s birthday must be getting closer, the girl had mentioned it a few days ago and she remembered the child’s disappointment at her last birthday passing by unnoticed during her time with the queen Nia.

Marie shrugged her shoulders at the vague answer. She had not been successfully yet in locating the ball she was searching for and she was sure that she had crossed the whole huge room by now. All that was left to look at now, were the places like under the bed. She got onto her knees next to the bed, pulling up a few furs which nearly touched the ground, trying to see if there was anything beneath it.

“What are you doing there?” Lexa inquired curiously with amusement underlying her tone. She had stepped closer to the bed, storing her shining headpeace on the small table next to the bed.

“Risha’s ball” came Marie’s muffled answer. She was still kneeling next to the bed, but there was not enough light to actually see anything, so, she was now feeling blindly beneath the large piece of furniture. “There is something” she called out a moment later, trying to stretch her arm just a little longer.

Lexa sighed under her breath; she could imagine what Marie was feeling there. Since Anya and Marie had moved into the commander’s quarters, she had been storing a small box with a few personal belongings under the bed. Marie had seen the box before, when she had shown her some of the sketches Clarke had drawn, but she guessed that Marie must have forgotten about it.

Marie frowned when she finally recognized the feeling of wood under the tips of her fingers. She still pulled at the item. Her expression turned confused, before it enlightened with recognition. She carefully took the box up from the ground, searching for Lexa and almost being surprised to find the woman sitting on the bed as if she was already waiting for her.

“Do you still have some of Clarke’s drawings in it?” Marie asked in a hopeful tone. She remembered how Lexa had shown them to her, before she had regained her memory.

Lexa nodded, motioning the girl to sit down beside her, as she carefully took the box from the girl’s hands. She opened it and pulled out the few pieces of paper on the top, closing the box again and placing it beside herself on the bed, as she handed the drawings over to Marie.

Marie pulled a grimace at the first drawing of herself. She did not know when Clarke had made it, but she was sure that she had not seen this one before. It showed herself, obviously right after her arrival in Polis after her time with the Ice queen, standing behind bars. It must have been when Clarke had seen herself there. “I thought you’d burnt them, mommy” she said in a low tone. Her fingers clenched automatically around the edges of the paper, crumbling it under her grip.

Lexa reached out, placing her hands over Marie’s softly. “I know that you do not wish to be reminded of that time, little star” she acknowledged the child’s reaction to the drawing. She had kept it though, because she did not wish to forget it either, no matter how bitter the time had been. It had been the moment of knowing for sure that their daughter was alive still.

“Can’t we destroy it?” Marie asked, almost pleading with the commander. She still let go of the piece of paper immediately once Lexa tried to brush her hands off of it.

Lexa sighed under her breath, folding the piece of paper clearly in half “You do not have to look at it, Marie, but I do want to keep it” she said honestly. She knew that Marie was considerate of the feelings of others and would most likely respect her wish to keep it.

Marie nodded clearly begrudgingly, but she simply turned her attention to the other drawings and her smile returned again as she spotted herself sitting at a fire in TonDC, playing with a much younger Risha. All of the other drawings Lexa had kept, showed either Marie alone, or Marie with Lexa or Anya in various scenes. She laughed once she recognized herself throwing the dagger at the mutant gorilla. She knew now that she most definitely only had had a huge amount of luck back then.

“Do you think Clarke could draw all of us together?” Marie asked in a thoughtful tone after she had looked through all of the drawings. There was not a single one which showed all of them. She admired the one which showed her complete tattoo though. It was really a shame that much of it was destroyed now.

Lexa nodded “I am sure she would be happy to do so, if you ask her in Arkadia” she agreed. She would actually like such a drawing as well.

“We could hang it on the wall” Marie said with a smile, pointing towards the wall right above the headpiece of the bed. She knew that some families on the Ark still had had hold of old-fashioned cameras and photos taken with them had been extremely valuable. She could remember that Maura had such a picture of herself as a toddler and her parents hung above her bed in their quarters.

Lexa nodded again with the hint of a smile. She could almost already imagine a rather large drawing hanging there.

Marie looked past Lexa to the box still standing next to her. Her curiosity was quipped now “Can I see what else there is?” she asked with shining eyes. She always loved when Lexa told her about her upbringing or her early training with Anya.

“Marie, don’t be so audacious” Anya chided the girl from the table suddenly in a strict tone “The things Lexa keeps in there are private”.

Marie frowned at the general, looking back at Lexa with her head slightly tilted to the said “I’m sorry, mommy” she immediately apologized.

“No harm done, little star” Lexa assured the girl in a kind tone “It is “may I” though and not “can I”” she corrected the child’s choice of words. She hesitated for a very brief moment, before she actually handed the whole box over to Marie “You may by the way” she said with a slight chuckle at the almost shocked expression on the child’s features.

Marie cautiously opened the lid of the wooden box, as if she was afraid that she could break it any moment. Lexa still held Clarke’s drawings in her hand.

Marie pouted as she spotted the braid Lexa had still kept from her on top of the rest of the things “I still don’t like that she has cut it off” she commented with a slight grumble in her tone.

Lexa shook her head at the girl “It has already grown back a lot” she reasoned kindly. She knew that it would probably still take a year or two until it was fully grown back to the same length.

Marie nodded with a sigh and she cautiously took out a necklace. It seemed to be made from a sort of leather cord but a beautiful shiny amber was dangling from it. “This is really beautiful” she commented, placing the amber in her palm and feeling over the gemstone carefully.

Lexa nodded and her expression turned melancholic for a moment. The necklace had belonged to Costia. She had gifted it to her. The amber had resembled the exact colour of her eyes. On the day, where Costia had been abducted from Polis, the necklace had been left behind. Lexa had known back then already that Costia would not have parted with it freely.

Marie’s smile lessened as she sensed Lexa suddenly switched mood. She mutely scooted closer to the woman, leaning against her slightly.

Lexa gave the child a strained smile. She knew that the memory of Costia would forever be a painful one to her.

“Was that from Costia?” Marie inquired in an unbelievably soft tone, looking up at the woman.

Lexa nodded with a deep sigh “Her eyes looked exactly like that in the sunlight” she explained.

Marie inspected the amber a little closer again, holding it upwards, so that the stone could catch some more light from the fire. “She must have been really beautiful” she acknowledged thoughtfully as she carefully placed the necklace back into the wooden box. She felt sorry now that she even had wanted to take a look at the things at all. It was obvious that it had saddened Lexa and the last thing she had wanted, was to make her mommy sad. She closed the wooden box with a soft click and quickly bend down, pushing it back under the bed, before she sat up again, giving the commander a quick hug “I am sorry, mommy, I had not wanted to make you sad”.

Lexa was surprised that the child had stopped looking through the things, it was obvious that she had been curious and she did not truly mind sharing her past with her daughter. “You can look through the rest if you want to” she assured the girl as her melancholic mood slowly eased again as she looked into the girl’s grey eyes.

Marie shook her head “Maybe another time” she said with a smile, letting go of Lexa again “I still haven’t found Risha’s ball” she pouted.

“Have you thrown it away?” she asked towards Anya with a frown. The general had not seemed very happy about her playing ball with Risha, saying to her that a wolf was not a dog who should apport things.

Anya shook her head “Of course, not” she retorted in a miffed tone, affronted that the child would assume so.

“It must be somewhere, Marie” Lexa reasoned. She knew that no one would have dared to throw it away.

Marie pouted still as she continued to search through their quarters. She let out a little squeal of triumph a short moment later, crawling out from under the couch, as she held up the ball she had been searching for with a wide smile.

Risha was jumping around Marie in clear excitement and Marie was currently trying to teach the commando “stay” to the wolf, wanting Risha to wait until she told her to run and fetch the ball.

“Why are we actually going to Arkadia?” Marie asked after a few moments, sitting on the ground now, leaning against the back of the couch as she continued to play with Risha.

Lexa and Anya exchanged a quick gaze. Lexa had not actually planned to tell Marie about the actual reason of their travel. “Clarke has written something worrying about the city of light” Lexa finally decided to tell the girl the whole truth.

Marie frowned, remembering that she had read about the city of light in the first commander’s journal, but something else about Lexa’s words stuck in her mind. “Clarke has written a letter to you?” she asked, stopping her play with Risha completely to the wolf’s obvious consternation.

Lexa nodded in agreement; she had just said so after all. She was confused why Marie appeared crestfallen all of a sudden. “What is it, little star?” she inquired attentively.

Marie looked at Lexa with sad eyes “Clarke has written to you” she said in a sad tone “Maura has obviously not answered to my letter. That must mean that she doesn’t even want to answer…” she seemed to sniffle at the end actually.

Lexa sighed under her breath “Marie, you are jumping to conclusions” she tried to caution the girl. There could be a number of reasons as to why no letter had been delivered to Marie from Maura.

Marie looked at Lexa with slightly teary grey eyes “Do you think she’s sick?!” she asked, tone getting higher and higher with each word.

Lexa quickly shook her head “No, little star, Maura may not have had time to answer yet” she tried to reassure the girl. Standing up from the table and sitting down next to Marie on the ground.

“In what…three weeks?” Marie retorted doubtfully, snuffling her nose.

Lexa sighed under her breath. She could not give the girl a satisfying answer, but she highly doubted that Maura would be actively ignoring her. “You will see her soon, Marie” she tried to sooth the girl.

“And if she doesn’t want to see me?” Marie asked, lower lip trembling already.

“Stop with this nonsense, Marie” Anya now finally said something as well “You are overreacting. Maura will have a good reason why she has not written and she will of course be happy to see you”.

None of them of course could have known, that Maura indeed had written a letter back, but Monty still had it, wanting to hand it over to Marie in person during the next meeting between the commander and the ambassadors.

 

 

 

 

Chapter 28: Chapter 272

Notes:

Previously in chapter 271
Marie and Lexa look through a box in which Lexa stores personal trinkets.

Chapter Text

Chapter 272

Marie’s worries that Maura may already have forgotten about her or was angry at her for some unknown reason were eased once the blonde girl finally received her friend’s letter from Monty.

Marie had been so excited about getting the letter from the young man, that she indeed has asked Lexa if she would be excused from the ambassador meeting to go and immediately read the letter.

Anya raised a brow at their daughter in mute criticism. In her mind there was absolutely no reason as to why Marie would need to leave the meeting and read her letter now instead of wating patiently for the meeting to be over and read it afterwards. To her it seemed also that the child was purposefully not looking at her direction, but only looking at Lexa with her most convincing innocent look within her large grey eyes.

Just as Anya wanted to chide their daughter, other ambassadors began to pile into the throne room and the general bit her tongue, not wanting to overrule Lexa in any way in front of witnesses.

Marie’s shoulders dropped a little and she pouted, feeling that she had missed her chance to exit the meeting.

The girl’s expression brightened tenfold though once Lexa nodded towards the balcony. The commander gave the child a gentle look “Stay outside until the meeting is over” she ordered in the kind tone and watched with the hint of a smile how Marie immediately hurried towards the balcony with happily hoping steps.

The guard standing at the large door to the balcony barely had time to pull it open for the girl, before Marie nearly collided with it in her haste.

Hearing the general’s unmistakable voice giving a snort over her shoulder, Marie threw back a charming smile with a slight blush to her cheeks, before she slipped through the door.

It was already relatively cold on the balcony. The sun was setting earlier with each day as the summer passed and blended into autumn. The wind was blowing strongly already and Marie felt her hair being pushed around her face wildly.

She let herself sink down against the wall of the tower, not paying the amazing breath-taking view any real glance. Instead immediately ripping over the letter she had received from Maura.

The other girl apologized for having taken so long to answer. Marie just rolled her eyes at that. She was sure that she could write a short letter each day if Anya and Lexa would let her, but both women had told her that it was a waste of paper and also not useful to bombard Maura with letters before she even got a single one. It also took a messenger at least two days to travel back and forth.

Some parts of the letter made her frown in confusion though. Maura had written that her mother had spent a lot of time with Jaha for some reason and that she wanted her to take some weird “key”. She did not understand what this was supposed to mean. Maura described that her mother had changed her behaviour as well somehow.

Marie wished that she would be allowed to use the radio which now probably was with Monty and tell her friend that she would come to Arkadia soon. She was not sure when they would really leave the capitol, but she somehow doubted that another messenger would make the way before them. She also did not know if she was supposed to tell her mums about the weird parts of Maura’s letter, but she just shrugged it off.

Marie did not know if the meeting was supposed to continue long, but she doubted that her mums would appreciate it if she returned inside before it was over and essentially interrupt the whole meeting.

So, Marie first re-read the letter a second time, before she turned her attention to her surroundings. Clouds were travelling across the sky and Marie leaned back to watch them further. She had taken a liking to gazing at the sky and trying to recognize shapes in the clouds.

Marie may not have received much schooling on the Ark, but now that she had access to Lexa’s assembled library, she liked to leaf through different books. She regretted not having one with her now.

The last one she had gotten was a book about a variety of animals. It was written in an index form as if it had been an educational lexicon in the old world. A few of the pages of the old book held hand-written comments, some even written in Trigedasleng. There were mostly hints about sightings of the different animals and how the animals may have changed in comparison to how they once looked like and behaved. Marie for example had not known that the gorilla or “pauna” she had encountered around TonDC with Lexa and Clarke was larger and more aggressive than these animals used to be.

If she looked up at the sky now and did not look too closely, the big cloud just passing by the tower could be recognized as a “pauna” and a loudly roaring one at that. Marie smiled slightly at the memory and her fingers almost automatically now went to the dagger which was strapped to her thigh daily now.

Marie shuddered for a moment as the unbidden thought invaded her mind of what would have happened to her if Lexa had died that day facing the gorilla to allow Clarke and her to slip away. She honestly doubted that the beast would have been busy long enough for Clarke and her to flee at all, both not sure of the way back to TonDC anyway. And even if they had made it back, Marie did not even want to really imagine how her life would be now if Lexa was dead.

For a second, she wondered if Ontari may be the commander then. They had gotten to know each other later. But she knew now better than anyone else just how strong the influence of the Ice queen could be.

Marie felt bitter bile rise in her throat and she shivered as she tried to forcefully ban all of the memories wanting to flood her mind. She wound her arms around herself and closed her eyes tightly, just trying to focus on her breathing as her surroundings lost the sharpness around her.

It took Marie long moments to slowly and almost painfully her racing breathing again and she frowned when she noticed how sweaty she felt. She shivered even more when she realized that it was a cold sweat.

She wanted nothing more than to just go inside now and be hugged by her mums. Marie knew that even seeing them would help right now.

Although she did not want to anger any of them, Marie did not hold out much longer on the balcony. The scenery around her had completely lost her interest and she knew that she needed company now.

Very carefully and slowly, Marie pushed open the door from the balcony, stepping inside on her tiptoes. She could still feel the weight of a few pairs of eyes immediately resting on her back as she evenly carefully closed the door behind herself, making sure to not even let it make a click.

Marie walked past the commander’s throne with her eyes glued to the ground, trying to ignore Titus glaring at her openly. The flamekeeper may have changed some of his opinion about her, probably just because she was able to heal Lexa, but he still did not like her at all and outright hated how much leeway Lexa allowed her. She had heard him rant to the young leader more than once, thankfully Lexa was obviously not paying his words much mind.

She came to stop directly next to Anya, glancing up at the general mutely for a brief moment.

Marie smiled slightly when Anya reached out and gently placed a hand on her back. She guessed that the woman must have noticed the shadow of her fears linger in her eyes.

~ ~ ~

The meeting was pretty boring and Marie did not even attempt to really listen closely. She stopped listening completely when two ambassadors began arguing about which of their clans had a higher claim on a certain shallow river.

She lightly leaned against Anya’s side after a few moments, internally hoping that the meeting would come to a stop soon. Being outside on the balcony suddenly appeared more tempting again, but Marie refrained from moving away and calling even more attention to herself.

Instead, she thought about Maura’s letter again. She was already really looking forward to seeing her friend again and a smile bloomed on her features, internally imagining what they could all do when they travelled to Arkadia.

Her smile froze again though. Maura had not seen her for a few months and so much had happened in the meantime. Marie knew that she had also changed a lot and she wondered if Maura had changed as well. What if the other girl would not really recognize her any longer? Or what if she did not like her anymore?

Marie’s mind was so occupied imagining one worse-case scenario after the other, that she completely missed when the commander called an ending to the meeting and the ambassadors began to file out of the room around them. She also missed how Anya had watched her the whole time with worried eyes, noticing immediately that something was bothering her daughter and how the girl had not payed any attention to the meeting at all.

“We should let you write reports of the future meetings” Anya remarked in an almost sarcastic tone once also the last ambassador, including Titus, had left the throne room and they were alone again, efficiently snapping the blonde girl out of her thoughts.

Marie blinked owlishly for a few seconds, looking around the large throne room quickly and noticing that only Lexa, Anya and herself were left in the room. She threw a sheepish look at the general, before she looked at Lexa with a slight blush on her cheeks.

The commander had stepped from her throne and came to a stop directly in front of Marie, gazing down at the blonde girl in open concern “Was something upsetting in Maura’s letter?” the brown-haired woman asked in a soft tone.

Marie first almost instinctually shook her head. She was not really upset about the letter after all. She remembered the rather weird parts though, stopped shaking her head and actually nodded. Before she decided that this was indeed not so important and the pressing matter was that Maura may not like her anymore, so, she switched back to shaking her head in the negative.

Lexa and Anya exchanged a confused look. They had both tried to establish a relationship with their daughter based on trust, where the child could willingly confess anything to them without the fear of being ridiculed for it.

“Spill, little star” Anya finally retorted after a second of silence as her brown eyes narrowed down at the girl inquiringly.

“There was something weird about her letter, but…” Marie now almost bubbled with her words “…what if she does not like me anymore now?” She looked back and forth between Lexa and Anya with her large grey eyes, mutely pleading for reassurance that her worries were not justified.

Lexa remarked to herself to inquire about the “weird” parts of the letter later again, deeming it more important to ease the child’s troubled mind for now first. “Why would Maura not like you any longer?” she questioned the girl in a kind tone, crouching down in front of her, so that their eyes were on the same level.

Marie bit at her lower lip for a second, shivering again as flashes of the Ice queen appeared in front of her eyes. She blinked a few times, focusing on Lexa’s gentle gaze instead again. “I changed so much because of …” she trailed off in a heavy tone, looking down at her feet again as her features fell in sadness.

Lexa sighed under her breath lightly before she reached out and gently tilted the girl’s chin upwards again, forcing her to reconnect their gazes, while she could see Anya’s hands now resting on the girl’s shoulders.

“Maura wrote to you. She would surely not keep contact to you, if she did not like you anymore” Lexa tried to reason with their daughter.

Marie did not look really convinced though and retorted “But we have not seen each other in … like forever” she exclaimed in a rising tone “she may not like who I am now…” she added in a more miserable tone.

Lexa gave the girl a long look before she shook her head at her. “The time on earth will have changed Maura as well, Marie” she said after long silent moments “do you think that you will like her any less now?”

Marie immediately shook her head in the negative, not even contemplating the question for a single second.

“And what was weird about her letter?” Lexa asked, hoping that changing the subject would at least distract Marie from her worries. She knew that she could argue all she wanted with their daughter. Marie would only really believe that Maura still liked her, once they travelled to Arkadia and both girls were able to reunite again. She had little doubt that Maura would react anything but happy to seeing Marie again.

Marie immediately pulled out the letter, having stuffed it under the hem of her shirt and quickly folded it open, trying to even out a few of the wrinkles she had caused by being careless with the material. She scanned over it again quickly and pointed with her finger on the parts about the “keys” and how Maura’s mother was behaving differently.

Lexa carefully took the letter from Marie’s hands, reading it over quickly herself and her features were drawn with worry when she connected what Clarke had already relayed to her with what Maura had written. They really needed to travel to Arkadia as soon as possible. Whatever was going on there had something to do with the flame and it was apparently influencing some of the Sky people already. The least thing they needed now were new tensions between the other clans of the coalition and the Sky people now that they finally had peace for once.

She also gave the letter to Anya, waiting patiently for her former mentor to scan over the letter as well. As Lexa had expected, Anya’s features soon mirrored her own internal worry.

Marie was looking between the two of them in confusion. Anya and Lexa had not enclosed the reason for their travel to Arkadia to their daughter and the girl did not know of the contents of Clarke’s message either. “Is there gonna be a new war soon, mommy?” the child questioned after a long moment of silence.

Anya had muttered a “this is not good” under her breath, shaking her head and handing the letter back to Lexa.

The commander slightly shook her head at their daughter. There was no indication yet that this would develop into a war, but something was going on and she planned to get down on it before there indeed could be another war.

“No” she said in a calmer tone than what she felt like “but we will begin our travel within the hour” she finally decided briskly.

Alira had had enough of a forewarning of their impending travel to already have prepared their luggage. Lexa knew that the warriors who would accompany them would also already be ready on call.

“We are travelling through the night?” Marie inquired in rising confusion. She knew that Lexa and Anya usually tried to avoid riding through the night as there were far more dangers outside and the terrain was harder to see as well.

Lexa nodded, gently steering the girl out of the throne room.

“But what is going on?” Marie asked curiously. She was not dumb and she knew that what she had found weird in Maura’s letter must have alarmed Anya and Lexa likewise. She had not understood the part of Maura’s letter though and it seemed that both of her mums indeed did.

“This “keys” that Maura mentioned…” Lexa finally explained in a low voice, making sure that they could not be overheard as they made their way to the elevator.

Marie nodded while her expression was still confused.

“Clarke has mentioned it as well and this thing is engraved with the commander’s symbol” Lexa continued to explain once the door to the elevator had glided closed behind them.

Marie frowned in astonishment at that. She had never thought that this could have anything to do with the flame. She had never seen the commander’s symbol anywhere on the Ark as she had grown up there. The journal of the first commander also clearly had said that the flame was brought to earth before the other stations had fused to form the Ark. So, how could these keys now show up in Arkadia?

“But a key to what?” Marie finally questioned after long moments of silence.

Anya inclined her head in approval of the girl’s sharp mind. “We do not know either yet” she answered before Lexa could.

Marie frowned still and tilted her head to the side “So, we are actually going to Arkadia to see what is happening there?” she asked and her voice got a weird undertone.

Lexa nodded in mute agreement and she sighed under her breath when open disappointment flashed over their daughter’s features. “We had planned to invite Maura to the capitol so that you could see her again” she tried to appease the blonde child quickly “but this now forestalled it.”

Marie lightly shrugged her shoulders, smile though when Risha jumped from their bed and greeted her enthusiastically “Can Risha come this time?” she asked hopefully, trying to make innocent eyes at Lexa and Anya likewise.

Anya looked doubtful at the question, raising a brow at their daughter, while Lexa finally nodded her head after a moment of contemplation. Marie had trained with Risha to run along while riding and it had worked out well. The journey to Arkadia was not overly long and if it did not work, Lexa was sure that the wolf would find her way back to the capitol or may even make it to TonDC.

Marie gave a small yelp of happiness at that, beaming brightly at the commander “Thank you, thank you, thank you” she chanted happily.

She stopped in her chanting when she remembered Ontari “And what about Ontari?” she questioned. She had hoped to show the older girl some of the place where she had grown up. Although Marie had really given her best to explain how the Ark worked and how it was living among the stars, she still had the impression that Ontari could not really imagine it.

To her utter disappointment though, Lexa shook her head “Ontari and Aden will remain in Polis, taking over my duties together with Titus during our absence”.

Marie nodded as she knew that the dark-haired girl would love that. Ontari had told her quite a lot about how it had been in the capitol while the three of them had been with the Boat People and it seemed that the Ice Nation nightblood had really rejoiced at the opportunity to actually be able to put some of her teachings finally to practise without the actual possibility of doing too much harm.

Chapter 29: Chapter 273

Notes:

Previously in chapter 272
Marie reads Maura’s letter which mentions Jaha’s keys as well. She speaks about it with Lexa and Anya.

Chapter Text

“Is there anything you want to pack?” Lexa asked their daughter in a kind tone once they had reached the commander’s quarters. On the way, she had alerted a few of the guards to summon Alira and relay word to the warriors who would accompany them, that she planned to leave Polis as soon as possible.

Marie immediately nodded, quickly scurrying through the large room and putting a few things on the table.

Anya watched the blonde child walk back and forth with a frown and how the small pile of things their daughter obviously wanted to take with her on their journey grew continuously until it almost seemed as if the girl had collected each and everything which belonged to her.

“You are aware that we are not going to stay in Arkadia permanently?” Anya drawled with a raised brow.

Marie swiftly turned on her feet, still holing a few scrolls in her hands which she had just wanted to add to the pile “I want to show Maura what I have learned” she reasoned in an innocent tone, looking torn at all the things she wished to take with her “and what I drew”.

Lexa walked over to the table as well “You really cannot take everything of this. You would need an additional horse to pack all this” she commented with a slight frown.

“But…” Marie wanted to argue as her features fell visibly.

Lexa shook her head “No, Marie, narrow down what you really want to take. To…” she halted for a second in thought before she added “… five things. Not more” the commander let her voice ring with finality and she did not let herself be influenced by the child’s sweet pleading expression.

Marie gave up after a moment and indeed sorted through the things again. She turned slightly to Lexa and Anya a moment later “As how many things do the drawing supplies count?” she questioned innocently.

Anya slightly rolled her eyes “You can certainly count to five, little star, and now stop dawdling” she chided the girl in a soft tone, no hardness in her brown eyes yet.

Marie pulled a face, but finally put down all of her art supplies. She settled on her own favourite drawing depicting the busy market of Polis, a candle she had crafted, a thin belt she had embroidered with a beautiful flowery pattern, a book and the ball Risha loved to play with.

“Okay, I have decided on five things” the girl proclaimed, sounding a little unsure “Can I take two more? I want to gift the candle to Maura’s mother and the belt to Maura, so, they should not really count”.

“Marie, you are not going to be bored in Arkadia and Maura can come and visit Polis in the future” Lexa retorted and shook her head at their daughter in denial.

“Come on now, little star, you can saddle your own horse this time” Anya distracted the blonde girl before she could try to argue further.

Marie immediately nodded, grey eyes shining with a little excitement that she was supposed to do something herself now. She turned towards Risha who had laid down in front of the fire place and called the wolf to her side.

“Can I say goodbye to Ontari?” she asked on the way to the elevator looking up at Anya hopefully.

The general shook her head though “The nightbloods are not in the tower right now. They are on a field practise and will not return before we leave”.

Marie looked honestly disappointed at that, but did not try to argue. She knew after all that there was nothing arguing would change now.

~ ~ ~

Anya shortly left Marie at the portal to the stables. The general wanted to shortly go to speak to a few members of her own unit who would not accompany them to Arkadia to specify their orders.

Marie entered the stables alone, leaving Risha just inside the gates as most of the horses still got restless in the wolf’s close proximity.

The girl politely greeted the stables master. The man had gotten used to the blonde girl’s frequent visits to the stables and all of his own seconds new to treat the commander’s second and daughter with the respect due to her position.

Marie first stopped at the general’s horse which had already looked over its stall and was neighing at her in greeting.

“Hi there, beautiful girl” Marie said with a smile, letting her fingers gently caress over the horse’s soft nose. Behind her Skairasha was now also neighing to get her attention.

Marie laughed under her breath “Yes, yes, you both are really horribly jealous of each other” she said looking between both the commander’s and the general’s horses with an amused expression. She patted the general’s horse one last time, before she indeed stepped over to Skairasha’s box.

Marie climbed onto the railing and gazed inside. Skairasha’s foal had grown visibly, but she knew that the foal still needed to grow a lot before it could be ridden the first time. She highly doubted that Skairasha would be the horse to take Lexa to Arkadia now as the foal still depended on its mother heavily.

She caressed over Skairasha’s silky neck until Anya appeared behind her again and cleared her throat loudly.

“Do you think that my horse is healed now?” Marie turned towards Anya, casting a glance down the row of stalls where the mutated horse was also looking at her.

Anya exchanged a glance with the stables master. She did not feel well with the thought of letting Marie ride that wild beast for such a long journey. The girl did not have the chance yet to actually try and ride it. She also did not trust that the horse would indeed be tame. She knew that it had bitten a second of the stables who had lost two fingers now.

“The broken leg seems healed, but it would be better to let it rest for longer” the stables master thankfully said and Anya inclined her head in agreement.

Marie pulled a face “Wait, I am going to say goodbye at least” she hurried down the row of stalls without waiting for an answer.

She gave the dark horse a smile “You and I are going to ride once I am back, I promise” she said to the horse, reaching out and caressing the horse’s head.

When Anya called for her though, Marie let her hand fall away again and quickly hurried to the general.

The stables master had chosen an experienced horse for Marie which had a patient and gentle character and would surely make no trouble for the girl.

Marie let the brown horse sniff at her fingers with a smile “Hello, girl” she greeted the animal kindly.

Anya leaned against the stall of her own horse, observing in silence how her daughter received a saddle and bridle from one of the seconds in the stables.

The girl knew how to ready a horse by now, but Anya still watched carefully.

“I know how to do that, Mum” Marie called over her shoulder feeling watched, but Anya just rolled her eyes mutely at the child talking back senselessly, not moving an inch.

Marie visibly had difficulties with getting the saddle positioned correctly on the horse’s back as she was still rather small in comparison to the large animal.

Anya did not move to help her though, waiting patiently if the blonde girl would ask for help or not.

Marie preferred to do the task alone though, stepping back breathing slightly heavier long moments later. She was not sure if she really had fastened the saddle correctly or not, but she guessed that it would do.

Anya did not test if Marie had done everything correctly when Lexa entered the stables just in this moment, followed by a few guards carrying bags under Alira’s instructions and fastening them to the horses they were directed to.

“Can you mount on your own?” Lexa asked once she stood beside her daughter, giving the girl’s shoulder a gentle squeeze for a moment.

Marie immediately nodded; she had learned well by now on how to compensate her lacking height with momentum.

Lexa and Anya both mounted their own horses, not watching how Marie got up. So that both failed to notice that Marie’s saddle was not fastened strongly to her mount and already moved under the child’s strong force of her mounting.

Marie did not notice it either as the horse trampled beneath her a little, unsettled by the girl’s abrupt movements.

Marie needed a few moments to shush the horse again, keeping a tight hold on the reigns until her mount had settled and was standing still as she wanted. She urged the horse to follow Lexa and Anya on theirs as both women steered their horses out of the stables.

Outside of the stables a group of warriors was already patiently waiting for their leader to command their departure from the capitol. Some the warriors were eyeing Risha sitting at the gates of the stables weirdly.

Marie clicked her tongue at the wolf, keeping the reigns very tightly, hoping that the horse she had been given would not shoo because of Risha.

She was lucky though and the brown horse indeed was docile and calm now. Marie patted its big neck in appreciation, steering her horse to come to a stop between Lexa and Anya. She smiled at both of her mums.

She was honestly excited that they would make the journey to Arkadia now.

Marie had never had to ride through the darkness of the night.

~ ~ ~

Marie quickly had to learn though that riding at daytime and riding through the night were indeed two very different things.

The whole group was riding very closely to each other and at a much slower pace than she was used to. Once the sun had set, they made a brief stop and Marie watched in interest how a few of the warriors – namely those who rode on the outer circle of their group – lightened torches.

“Those don’t really help to see” Marie observed almost thoughtfully to her mums in a low tone.

Lexa shook her head, while Anya acknowledged in agreement “No, but they do keep some predators away”.

“Oh” Marie exclaimed in slight surprise. She could barely make out Risha anymore. The wolf had decided to run in front of their group.

Some time later though Marie suddenly noticed how Risha sped up. She shouted to the wolf, but the animal was not slowing down and soon she could not see it any longer, vanishing between the trees of the forest they were about to enter.

Marie kicked the sides of her horse, wanting to rush behind Risha, but quickly Anya had reached out and pulled on the reigns of her daughter’s horse.

“No, Marie” the general said in a decisive tone, not letting go of the reigns yet either.

“But Risha is not going to know where to find me” Marie argued in a sad tone, looking at Lexa and Anya with a pleading expression, although both of her mums most likely could not see that in the darkness around them.

“Risha is clever, little star” Lexa retorted, trying to appease their daughter “She will know the way back to Polis and otherwise she can find us later”.

Marie frowned, feeling worry bubble in her mind. Of course, Risha did leave the tower alone as well, but Marie doubted that the wolf actually ran far from Polis.  

Lexa on the other hand had little doubt that the wolf would find its way back to Marie. Risha was very deeply connected to her human after all.

The girl felt a sheen of unshed tears burn within her eyes and Marie was suddenly glad about the darkness around them, knowing that no one of the others would notice the way her grey eyes glistened with tears. She wanted to believe her mommy’s faith in Risha’s abilities, but she was really afraid that she had just lost her beloved pet. She knew of course that Risha was a fully-grown wolf now and that there would only be a few predators which could threaten the wolf, but she also feared that Risha could run into some hunters’ trap. The people in Polis and TonDC had all known Risha by now and no one would have dared to harm the wolf, but what if Risha encountered a hunter from a small village who did not know about her?

Everything within Marie urged her to speed up her horse and try and catch up with Risha, although the wolf had now of course long disappeared in the darkness. But she also knew enough about this earth and the danger of their surroundings to understand why her mums were not allowing or even helping her to find the animal.

So, Marie instead took a few deep breaths, trying forcefully to stop her mind from picturing scenarios in which Risha would die somewhere in the woods before the morning, and instead focused on the rhythmical movements of the horse’s back under her own body.

It did not take them much longer before they also reached the outskirts of a denser forest, forcing them to ride even slower as the horses carefully had to search for the way.

Marie felt both of her mums watching her from time to time, making sure that she was not struggling to hard with her horse. Now that the ground was uneven, Marie was indeed having difficulties to counter the horse’s unexpected and at times abrupt movements.

“You can ride with me, Marie” Anya offered from her right side in a low tone, visibly having lesser difficulties with her own horse.

But Marie resolutely shook her head in the negative and straightened her shoulders. She could do this and she would show both her mums that she was skilled enough in riding now to not require assistance.

~ ~ ~

Marie had no idea for just how long they continued to ride through the night. Her legs were beginning to feel slightly numb. It had grown colder around them noticeably and she was also feeling her tiredness.

It was getting straining to keep her eyes open. Marie had had a fairly structured routine in the capitol and although they got up very early in the morning, Marie was always tired out by the time to go to sleep and now it was several hours past her usual bedtime.

Marie really hoped that they would be stopping for the night soon. She knew that they had packed a few smaller tents which would be suitable to make a small camp for the night. But Marie had also heard often enough that warriors often travelled through the nights without rest, to now not be sure if her mums had planned the same.

Marie was internally debating with herself if she should just ask her mums if they were going to make a stop for a few hours or maybe if they could make at least a small break. The small group of warriors which accompanied them were all deeply trusted and Marie doubted that they would think of her as weak if she asked for a break, but something was still keeping her from asking.

Thankfully, a few minutes later, as if Lexa had read her daughter’s thoughts called the group to a stop. They had reached a small clearing which offered enough place to erect the few tents they had packed.

Marie let out a deeply relieved breath. She could barely wait to dismount and she really hoped that there would be enough furs in the saddlebags to make for a relatively soft bedding. But as tired as she felt right now, even the soft grass would probably be inviting to lie down.

The other warriors all immediately dismounted at the commander’s signal and one also started to herd together the different horses.

Marie smiled down at Anya who waited next to her daughter’s horse, swinging one of her legs above the saddle.

She let out a surprised and startled squeal as she suddenly felt the saddle give away under herself. Marie had not fastened the saddle strong enough and it had loosened even further as they had continued their journey.  

Anya was standing on the other side of Marie’s horse and although she tried to quickly reach out and keep a hold of the saddle and hopefully on Marie as well, but the slight thud which resonated a moment later belied her attention.

Marie gave a muffled scream as she landed on her backside in a heap together with the saddle next to the horse, which gave a neigh and trotted over to the rest of the horses.

“So much for you being able to saddle your horse alone” Anya commented rather drily, crossing her arms over her chest as she looked down on Marie with a raised brow.

Lexa reacted overly worried though, nearly rushing over to the blonde girl and quickly helping her up, asking if the girl had hurt herself and what had even happened.

Marie’s cheeks were slightly reddish when she admitted in a low tone that Anya was right and the fall had been her own fault for not fastening the saddle well enough.

Lexa sighed under breath. They had all been rather lucky to not have made their trip during daytime and with a much higher speed. Marie’s saddle would surely have gotten lose way sooner and a fall from a horse at a high speed could even end lethally.

Marie’s face still had a reddish tint when she brushed off her trousers and bend down again, carrying over her saddle to the side of their soon-to-be makeshift camp.

Around them the other warriors had already fallen in long trained synchrony and while four people were busy erecting one tent after the other, two had set out to gather firewood, while another pair had vanished with a few waterskins to a stream they all knew to be near enough. They would not be on their journey long enough to have to hunt now.

Marie saw Gustus rummaging through a large bag, pulling out what appeared to be a few bundles. She recognized a moment later when Gustus removed the rags that this were food portions packed from the kitchens in Polis.

Lexa gave the girl a gentle shove in Gustus’ direction, mutely telling her to assist the burly guard in distributing the food among their small group.

Marie obediently stepped over to Gustus, she rubbed her backside on the small way which was honestly still smarting from the impact. She yawned deeply when she opened her mouth to offer Gustus her help.

The man snorted slightly under his breath, shaking his head at the girl, but his dark eyes remained kind. “Here” he said to Marie with amusement underlying his tone, handing over a few pieces of bread and strips of dried meat.

Marie still walked a little funnily as she walked around and distributed the food among the warriors.

She came to a stop some time later next to the fire, sitting down between Lexa and Anya, giving both of her mums a tired smile. She had kept a piece of bread and a strip of meat for herself and took a bite from the bread first.

Marie watched in slight confusion as the three warriors which had been assorted the first guard shift seemed to spring to attention. Her confusion only rose when they let their weapons sink and it took Marie a moment longer to recognize Risha breaking through the underbush and stepping onto the clearing.

Her heart immediately felt lighter again at seeing her wolf again, alive and obviously unharmed. Marie blinked in surprise though when Risha directly came to her, sat down right in front of her and let something fall from her mouth.

Marie pulled a face of disgust when she recognized the slightly bloody body of a small rabbit.

Anya let out a laugh “Your wolf has brought you food” she commented.

“Eeewwwiiie….!” Marie exclaimed when Risha pushed the rabbit further in her direction with her nose.

The wolf seemed to watch her closely for a moment.

Marie was not really sure but to her it seemed as if Risha had just shrugged, before she began to rip the rabbit apart. She felt even more disgusted when a few splashes of blood landed on her trousers.

“I very well hope that you do not expect your wolf to sleep in our bed looking like this” Anya said critically, glancing at the wolf’s bloody fur.

“But…” Marie wanted to argue as Risha always now slept at the foot of their bed.

Lexa interrupted the child though, having to agree with her general “You really have to wash the blood from her snout”.

Marie nodded with a slight sigh. All she wanted now was to go to bed and sleep. She knew that it could not be too long before the sun would rise again and she doubted that they would stay long before their journey would continue.

Risha did not seem to find it too amusing though when Marie kneeled down in front of her with a moist rag and tried to clean the fur around her snout. The wolf continued to try and turn away her head, but thankfully at least remained sitting in front of her human.

Marie was really relieved when Lexa and Anya both had stopped their short meal and they could go to bed now. She tiredly let herself sink down on the furs between Lexa and Anya in the rather small tent they would use for this night.

She yawned deeply before she tiredly smiled at Anya over her shoulder. Her grey eyes were already starting to flutter shut “’night. Love you” she mumbled slightly hard to understand, before she turned a little and let her head fall against Lexa’s shoulder.

The commander placed a soft kiss on the top of their daughter’s head “Sleep well, our little star”.

Chapter 30: Chapter 274

Notes:

Previously in chapter 273
The journey to Arkadia begins.

Chapter Text

Exactly like Marie already had expected, the night was extremely short. It felt to her as if she had just closed her eyes and peacefully drifted off, surrounded by the warmth of both of her mums, when Anya already slightly shook her shoulder again to rouse her.

Marie groaned under her breath, as she pulled the fur which she had used as a cover through the night over her face.

Anya looked down at their daughter with a shake of her head. Both, she and Lexa, had already gotten up and were dressed again to continue their journey. She had wanted to immediately wake the blonde girl, but Lexa had wanted to let her sleep just a little while longer instead.

“Don’t wanna get up yet” Marie grumbled. Her voice was heavily muffled from the fur covering her face.

“Enough now” Anya proclaimed in a strong tone. The general waited for a few moments and when Marie obviously had no intention to get up, she bent down and roughly tugged at the fur covering the child.

Although Marie obviously tried to keep a hold on the fur, Anya’s tug was much stronger and a moment later, Marie sat up with a grimace on her features. “Mama!” the girl exclaimed in a reproachful tone, crossing her arms over her chest.

Anya did not pay the girl’s attitude any real mind though. The general folded the fur together and stored it into a bag. When the girl still had not moved from her spot and was glaring slightly at her, Anya just threw the girl’s shirt at her, hitting her right in the face, and said “Get ready. We leave soon” before swiftly exiting the tent.

Marie was still grumbling something under her breath, stretching herself and slowly pulling the shirt on, when Lexa entered the tent a few moments later.

“Good morning, sleepyhead” the commander greeted their daughter in a kind tone and a soft smile graced her features.

Marie’s grimace was interrupted by her having yawn deeply. She sighed once, before she lightly smiled at Lexa “Morning, mommy” she finally reciprocated the commander’s greeting words. She got to her feet a few seconds later, grimacing a little at the tightness of the muscles of her thighs. She was not used yet to riding such long distances and she found that guiding a horse herself required much more muscles than just sitting on one and letting one of her mums do the “work”.

“Are you in pain?” Lexa inquired immediately having watched the child from the corner of her eyes and noticing the change of her grimace from slight annoyance to a hint of pain.

Marie slightly shrug her shoulders “Not really, think it’s just a muscle ache from riding” she explained when Lexa raised a brow at her.

Lexa inclined her head in acknowledgment. She would remember to give the girl a massage during the next evening which would relieve most of her pains or at least prevent further pain from forming.

“Is there any breakfast?” Marie asked in an almost hopeful tone as she quickly splashed some cold water into her face. She left her hair just like it was after having felt that it still seemed to be pretty much in order.

Lexa shook her head though. Most of the camp had already been broken down by now. “You can have some bread on your horse” she suggested. As soon as they had left the capitol, Lexa’s worry about what was going on in Arkadia had risen and she wanted to get there as soon as possible. A small part of her also could not stop herself from worrying over Clarke. What if the blonde healer was in danger from her own people now? She also knew that a few of her own people – members of Trikru villages surrounding Arkadia – were frequent visitors to the Skykru’s settlement.

The flamekeeper and those who served in this guild had always kept their eyes and ears open for an appearance of the commander’s symbol somewhere. Unfortunately, during the many years which had passed since the first commander reigned, it was forgotten by now just what this appearance could mean. Her sense of foreboding told Lexa though that it was nothing good. And of course, it yet again had to be Skykru who were associated with this appearance.

“Hi, girl” Marie greeting her wolf with a smile and ruffling the animal’s fur, interrupted Lexa’s thoughts and the commander focused on getting her belongings ready again instead.

“Marie, get dressed” Lexa gently reprimanded the child, when Marie laid down again on the residual furs, this time with the wolf.

Marie sighed again, but obediently got up, only frowning mildly.

“Are you not exited to meet Maura again?” Lexa asked, trying to lighten the child’s obviously glum mood.

Just as she hoped, Marie’s features lightened up immediately at the mention of her friend and the girl nodded excitedly “Oh yes, of course” she agreed in a cheery tone and all tiredness was forgotten instantly, instead the girl launched into loudly proclaiming her thoughts about all that she wanted to do together with Maura once they reached Arkadia.

“…oh, I really wanna go to the stream close to Arkadia with” Marie continued to chat happily.

Lexa was only listening casually. She was happy for her daughter that the girl was so enthusiastic about their little journey, but she honestly highly doubted that this visit would go over as peacefully as Marie was imagining it now.

“Do you think Maura can swim?” Marie mused thoughtfully. The child had continued to chat excitedly while getting ready and was still speaking when they were all mounting their horses.

“Eat, Marie” Anya threw in from the side, passing over a piece of bread to the girl.

Lexa slightly rolled her eyes, hidden both from Anya and their daughter. She was fairly certain that the general was just giving the girl something to eat, to shut her up for a little while.

Marie took the bread and took a bite, but she was looking back and forth between the commander and general, waiting for an answer to her question. When both remained silent and just kicked their horses into a slow trot, the corners of Marie’s mouth fell. “And?” she checked in an expectant tone.

“And what?” Anya finally retorted, glancing over to the blonde child for a moment before her brown eyes returned to scanning their surroundings.

Marie narrowed her eyes at the general, noticing that the woman had indeed not listened to her. She sulked for a few moments, before she looked over to Lexa, hoping that at least the commander had payed attention to her.

Lexa met the child’s grey-eyed gaze before she inclined her head “You will see if Maura can swim or not. I know that a few of the Trikru are regular visitors to Arkadia, so, someone can have taught her to swim by now. Why?”.

Marie momentarily glared at Anya, before she turned her full attention to Lexa and her features were illuminated by a bright smile again “’cause I wanna show her a few of the tricks I learned from Adria” she informed the commander. She spent the next few minutes in depths trying to remind Lexa of just what tricks she was thinking.

Lexa patiently listened to their daughter enumerate just about any trick Luna’s daughter had taught to her while they had stayed with the Boat People, she nodded along from time to time and Marie seemed content like that.

Anya had just rolled her eyes at the child’s sulk before and did not even try to listen. The general noticed though how amused Gustus appeared from the whole scene, riding just on the other side of the commander. She internally wondered if their daughter had enough plans about what she wanted to do with Maura, to keep the talk going on for the rest of their journey.

Lexa let the girl talk for a long time, before she finally put a stop to the child’s seemingly never-ending chatter about what she all could do with Maura. She directed the young girl’s attention back to their surroundings, asking her to keep her ears open to bird calls. “Can you identify now if those are real birds or scouts communicating?” she asked their daughter. She had formulated the question in a way which would surely daunt the girl to show off her skill now and keep her occupied for a while.

Indeed, Marie fell silent immediately and a focused look appeared on her features. Her grey eyes first scanned their surroundings as well, looking up at the sky if she could spot any birds flying around at all or not.

Once Marie seemed to have grown tired of trying to listen out for bird calls, Anya asked the child to point out the different trees and plants they were crossing. If Marie got the names they used right, she also wanted to know if they could be eaten or if they had known uses as medical plants. Although the general herself had never put much effort into learning about the medical properties of plants, Marie had shown interest in that and she knew that Clarke had taught their daughter a lot about it.

“You have payed good attention to all of what Clarke told you” Lexa acknowledged after a while. Her education to become commander had not really contained any part of healing and she was impressed that Marie seemed to have absorbed this kind of knowledge so quickly. It may be of interest to their daughter to help the healers in Polis as well. Clarke had only been on earth for a short while and had very limited knowledge of the current vegetation, so, one of their own healers could impart a lot of additional information on the child. The girl’s healing talent did not work on everyone and still it was in her character to help other people and she did not want to watch others in pain.

Marie looked very proud at the praise.

“Do you think Nyko will also be in Arkadia?” Marie asked suddenly in interest.

Lexa was not sure about the answer though. She knew that Clarke’s mother had worked together with the Trikru healer, exchanging knowledge between both clans. Skykru had offered to teach other healers from all clans who were interested in learning about their ways of healing, but she knew that so far only Trikru healers had taken up this offer, strongly encouraged by herself.

“He may be, yes” she answered vaguely.

Marie inclined her head with a thoughtful expression.

~ ~ ~

They continued their ride through the forest at a much quicker pace than during the previous night.

Marie could watch the time passing as the sun changed its position over the trees and the tightness in her thigh muscles was slowly morphing into distinct pain. Although she had seen a map of the lands between Polis and Arkadia, Marie currently had no clue as to how long their journey would still continue before the finally reached their destination.

She counted it as a blessing though that the weather was graceful on them. It was dry and the sky clear and neither was it too warm nor too cold for once.

“How long until we are there?” she asked after another while. Her thighs were hurting and her but was also starting to hurt to be honest from sitting in the saddle so much.

“A while” Anya answered nonchalantly.

“How long is “a while”?” Marie checked, tilting her head a little the side, like she always did when she wanted to understand something.

Anya rolled her eyes at the blonde girl “You will know when we are there” she commented drily.

Marie pouted visibly and her lower lip protruded at the even snappy answer.

“Mommy?” Marie seemed to have changed her tactic after a few moments, the pout had left her face and she had a sweet expression on her features now.

Lexa looked over towards their daughter with a raised brow. The commander shortly met her former firsts’ gaze, the general appeared mildly affronted in fact.

“When will be in Arkadia?” Marie asked in an innocent tone, giving the commander a charming smile.

“Soon, little star” Lexa answered easily but kept it vague on purpose “Do you need a break?” she inquired after a few seconds had passed in silence and the blonde child’s expression had fallen visibly.

Marie sighed under her breath and she grimaced when she slightly stretched out her legs, removing her feet from the stirrups for a moment “My legs hurt…” she exclaimed and her tone turned slightly whiny when she added “…and my bum as well”.

Lexa chuckled slightly under her breath “It will still take a while before we will reach Arkadia, but I have not planned a long break now”.

“Can we make a short one then?” Marie asked in an almost pleading tone and she lowered her tone noticeably before she added “I gotto pee as well”.

Lexa inclined her head in agreement. She was not sure if the girl just wanted to stall for time, but Marie should have enough experience with riding now to know that dismounting, walking around a few moments and then having to get back on the horse, would actually just intensify the pain she felt now.

The commander called the whole group to a stop and dismounted her own horse. She wisely had stepped closer to Marie and her horse and she was not really surprised that the girl’s legs gave away under her once she dismounted with a little bit too much force. She quickly steadied the girl and waited for a few seconds. She knew all too well that Marie’s legs would be tingling horribly right now and the girl would need a little bit of time before she would be able to walk straight.

“Ouch…” Marie grumbled under her breath when Lexa’s steadying hands fell away and she stepped towards a patch of denser trees around them, intending to relieve herself behind one of them. Her legs felt horrible. The slight tingling sensation had flared up into real pain and she felt as if she was walking on some sort of muddy ground.

Marie more or less scuttled behind the trees after a few moments. She noticed that Risha had followed her as well and the wolf was sniffing around in interest.

She hurried to relieve herself as crouching down to do so actually hurt like hell. Marie had to steady herself against a tree trunk as she carefully got up again and she bit back a groan of pain. She really hoped that the rest of their trip would not take too long now and she hoped that Abby would maybe have something to help her with the pain. She knew from the rough training of the royal guard from the Ice Queen that muscle aches just intensified before they got better without any kind of treatment. She would absolutely hate it, if her first day back at Arkadia would go to waste because she would not be able to move around as she wanted.

Marie saw that Risha must have found a track of interest and the wolf left out a slight growl, before moving away from the rest of their group.

Marie frowned behind the wolf, torn for a moment if she should try to follow Risha and call the wolf back or if she was supposed to directly return to her mums and the other warriors. After the wolf had left for several hours last night, Marie felt more inclined to follow her pet now. It was not dark after all now, so, Marie regarded all precaution, even forgetting to call out to Lexa or Anya, and just hurried behind Risha – as fast her smarting legs allowed – before the wolf could fully disappear from her view.

In her hurry, to follow the wolf, Marie was not paying as much attention to her steps and the ground beneath her feet, as she should have and promptly slipped. She braced herself on her hands and knees, scrapping open both her palms. She looked down at herself in annoyance when she noticed that she also had destroyed the trousers and she could see blood shimmering on the skin of her right knee.

Now, that Marie had already left behind the others, she was focused on spotting Risha again though and she quickly hurried in the direction in which she thought that the wolf had disappeared.

Marie came to an abrupt halt, when she heard a growl. She relaxed just a fraction when she identified the source of the growl as Risha. One of her hands had closed around the handle of Lexa’s dagger which was strapped to her thigh almost automatically by now.

She remained standing where she was for a moment in confusion, indecisive on what to do. The wolf was standing there, growling at two people. Weirdly, they showed absolutely no reaction to the animal.

Marie would have expected them to be dead, if they were not kneeling in a perfectly straight pose on the ground. They sat facing each other, but their eyes were closed. From the clothes they were wearing, Marie guessed that it actually were Skykru as well. Although she could recognize that the jackets could also be Trikru. But she could not spot any visible tattoos. So, if they were Trikru, they were not recognizable as warriors, as most had some visible tattoos.

“Risha!” she called in a low tone, trying to catch the animal’s attention. Marie was not sure why, but the scene was creeping her out. It was unnatural to sit so straight and also very stupid not to react to the growling of a predator close by. She could not understand why they were acting this way.

In the distance, Marie suddenly heard voices shouting and she bit her lips in guilt. Obviously, her disappearance had been noticed and she already felt her stomach knot together. Anya would be livid that she had left to run behind Risha without telling them.

Gladly, Risha finally seemed to listen to her and trotted back to her “You got me in trouble” she told the wolf in a reproachful tone.

Marie turned from the two strangers after another moment. They had not moved a single inch as far as she could tell. She quickly forgot about them, when she distinctly heard her name being called.

~ ~ ~

Anya and Lexa had stayed with their horses, while a few others of their group had also taken the chance to relive their selves. Once everyone had returned, it was obvious that Marie was not back yet.

Lexa let go of her reigns with a sigh and just told Anya and the others to wait. She had seen after all where their daughter had vanished between the trees.

Lexa frowned though when she crossed the small distance and there was absolutely no sign of the blonde child. For a moment she felt her stomach sink and rising panic, when her mind concluded that they had once again lost the girl. Before she just followed the clear tracks, Marie had left behind, Lexa hurriedly turned around.

“She is not there” Lexa loudly proclaimed towards Anya and Gustus, trying to keep control on her internal panic.

“Oh, I am going to wring her neck myself” Anya muttered under her breath. The general was not overly worried yet, she had seen the wolf leave together with Marie and she could already imagine that Marie had just followed her pet wolf somewhere without even wasting a single thought about telling them “It is worse than watching a bag of fleas!” she still grumbled.

Lexa ordered the group of warriors to wait with the horses, only Gustus and Anya followed her, as they quickly began to look for their lost daughter.

It did not take Lexa long to spot the place where Marie must have fallen down and she frowned when her fingers came up from the ground slightly bloody. Her heart began to pound quicker. What if someone had just waited for Marie to separate from them to seize her?

Lexa forcefully put a stop to this intrusive thought, her warriors would have noticed if anyone had followed them on their journey from Polis.

“Marie!” Anya and Lexa shouted loudly in exchange. The girl had not been overly cautious on her way obviously and her tracks were easy to follow.

“I am here” a hurried voice answered one of their calls finally.

Lexa just felt relieve flooding her whole system and all she wanted to do now, was encase the girl in her arms and check her over. She had found blood after all.

Anya’s expression though had turned angry and the general surpassed the commander, stepping into her path directly and the older woman towered over Marie once the girl finally appeared in front of them.

“I hope you have a very good explanation” Anya said to the child in a sharp tone, looking down at her with a hard and strict expression.

Marie opened and closed her mouth for a few seconds, before she slightly shook her head and one of her hands had fallen down on the wolf’s head next to her “Risha had run away…” she feebly admitted, lowering her eyes immediately.

Anya’s expression now openly showed her anger at the child “Of course and it did not even cross your mind to come back to us, stupidly chasing your wolf alone instead” the general ranted at the girl.

Marie seemed to shrink in size being faced with the livid woman, but she knew deep-down that she very well deserved this scolding now. She doubted though that it would be wise to say that she had thought first about going back.

Anya continued to almost relentlessly scold their daughter. This was not the first time after all that Marie had completely disregarded her own safety and neither the first time that the child had gotten lost.

“I have not gotten harmed though” Marie feebly tried to appease the general, hoping that the woman would run out of things to throw at her soon.

Anya raised a brow at the girl, pressing her lips into a thin angry scowl for a moment.

Marie quickly closed her mouth again and hid her hands behind her back.

Lexa finally put a stop to all of it though, appearing behind Anya and shaking her head at the older woman. “Are you hurt?” she questioned the child, voice still tinted strongly with worry.

Marie immediately shook her head in denial “Just a few scratches” she assured her and obediently showed her palms and knees to the commander.

“These need to be cleaned out before we can continue” Lexa finally assessed. She knew that Anya internally was still seething, but she hoped that Marie would really soon learn to use common sense in such situations.

Chapter 31: Chapter 275

Chapter Text

Previously in chapter 274

The journey to Arkadia continues. On a break, Marie follows Risha and encounters people in a trance-like state.

 

Chapter 275

Marie was wise enough to keep her mouth shut after Lexa had gently helped her clean the few scratches that she had acquired. She could feel Anya’s dark gaze shifting over to her from time to time and Marie did her best to ride in an upright position, keeping her attention now focused on the trees they passed.

Soon, she had all but forgotten the strange encounter she had in the woods on her own, as her mind was being focused on the now blazing pain in her thighs. Marie did not wish to ask again though for how long their ride would continue. She knew that Anya would most likely just snap at her anyway.

Thankfully, Risha did seem to sense as well that staying closer to the group of horses was the wiser choice for her human. So, Marie never lost the wolf out of sight again.

She could only hope now that Anya’s anger at her would fade away once they indeed reached Arkadia. Marie remembered the threat the general had made in the past, about not being left out of sight again for a while until she was trustworthy once again. Hopefully Anya would not remember it as well.

Internally, Marie wondered if she could somehow appease Anya’s bad mood. She knew deep down that she very well had provoked it, but she hated knowing that Anya was angry with her and it made her stomach coil uncomfortably. She wanted to apologize, but she doubted that her words would be welcome right now.

Marie’s disquieting feelings only intensified when she noticed that they must be close to Arkadia now. She began to vaguely recognize a few prominent landscape points as they continued their ride.

She had already talked about this worry with both her moms, but they had not succeeded in fully settling it. Marie was all too aware of just how different she already looked physically and although she could not judge how much her personality had changed in the months since she had last seen Maura, she was sure, that she would have changed a lot.

Lexa wisely had hinted at the fact that Maura might as well have changed as the other girl’s life had of course continued without Marie’s presence.  

The fear that Maura might not like her anymore was deeply routed though and it grew again inside of Marie’ mind the closer to Arkadia the horses took them. Marie still missed the nightblood children – especially Nymo – who had died a while ago now and wished to never lose a friend again. Although she had of course seen enough of this world and the reality the lived in to know this to be impossible.

Marie began to shift in the saddle nervously as the anxiousness rose within her. She was of course happy that she would very soon see Maura again, having the possibility to hug her old friend close, but the “what if’s” were loudly running through her mind as well.

Her anxiousness was replaced with surprise though once Arkadia came into view. It looked almost nothing like the small settlement Marie remembered.

Huts stretched out far beyond that metal fence now and the fence was sort of more in the middle of the settlement as if the people had fanned out in a ring around the carcass of the Ark. Marie was astonished to realize that a large variety of different fields had been cultivated in the last few months. A few of them seemed to hold fruits which might even be close to ready to be harvested. She knew of course that there were fields around Polis as well, but thus far, Marie had not really spent any time on them beside passing them by on the way into the woods.

She was not sure what the distinct markings on the huts they passed meant. She thought to recognize something which largely resembled a mixture of the symbols of Trikru and Skaikru as if both had been morphed to form a new sign.

When Marie threw a questioning glance at Lexa, the commander did not appear surprised.

“If you had paid better attention to the last few meetings we have attended, you would know that a few of the delinquents who you had been part of, have settled outside of the inner part of Arkadia and most have mixed with younger warriors from the Trikru villages around” Anya exclaimed with snide in her tone as her brown eyes narrowed at their daughter.

Marie had the decency to look ashamed for a second, before she lowered her gaze.

Her mortification was short-lived though, as a loud shout resonated from their left suddenly “Marie!”.

Marie immediately recognized the voice as Maura’s and she quickly turned her head towards the other girl.

Maura was running towards them and Marie could see Clarke and Abby following her.

Marie gave Lexa a smile of silent gratitude when the commander offered mutely to take the reigns of Marie’s horse. Carefully, the blonde girl got down from the horse, trying to ignore the pains shooting through her legs. She was not sure if she would be able to walk towards Maura and shorten the way.

Before Marie could have tried though, Maura had crossed the distance and Marie was almost taken off guard by the other girl immediately hugging her close.

“I’m so happy that you are finally back here” Maura chirped in a happy tone. The girl squeezed her arms around Marie’s form for a moment, before she let go and took a little step back. Her eyes scrutinized Marie’s appearance for a few silent seconds.

Both, Lexa and Anya, were watching the reunion of the two girls in silence. They of course both knew how worried their daughter had been about this moment and especially Lexa internally hoped that their daughter would not end up heartbroken now.

Neither of them would have needed to worry though.

Maura smirked even a little mischievous “Clarke had told me about your shorter hair. It really looks soooo chill on you” she assessed “I want to have mine cut a lot shorter as well and wow, you are so tan. Clarke has also told me a lot about being at the ocean. Oh, you have to tell me every detail…”.

Marie looked utterly relieved for a second, stunned even at not even a single negative comment, but she immediately nodded enthusiastically “You would have loved the ocean. I can teach you how to swim at the river if you can’t swim already. Oh, and I can show and teach you all the tricks in the water the other kids there taught me.”

“Mother and I moved out into one of the huts as well. Come on, I can show you” Maura suggested excitedly.

Marie already nodded in agreement, when she heard a throat being cleared from the other side and she apologetically looked over to both her mums.

Anya’s brows were drawn together and her dark gaze still showed her previous anger, Lexa on the other hand gave her a gentle expression and nodded towards the blonde child to just run along for now.

Marie smiled brightly at both of them for a brief moment, before she returned her attention to her very first childhood friend and Maura grabbed her hand, pulling her away with fast strides.

What Marie did not know and also did not notice, was that one of the warriors immediately dismounted as well and followed the girls. Lexa and Anya had arranged a personal guard for their daughter. They knew that the girl could protect herself better now than she could a year ago, but they did not wish to take any risks now.

~ ~ ~

Lexa briefly watched the two girls scurry away and out of sight before she let her attention turn to Clarke and her mother.

Markus Kane and Indra had joined both by now and the small group was waiting to officially welcome the commander in Arkadia.

Lexa’s green-eyed gaze almost automatically scanned over Clarke’s form.

The commander had her facial expression tightly controlled, otherwise she would have broadcasted a frown at the dark shadows under the young blonde woman’s blue eyes.  Clarke was not away from the capitol for very long yet, but it was already obvious that the time here had not been kind to her. She appeared worried and drawn. Lexa also had the impression that she had lost a bit of weight.

“Commander, it is always a pleasure to welcome you among our people” it was Markus who stepped forward first as official leader of the Sky people now and his dark eyes still shown with a gentle honesty.

Lexa gave the man a respectful nod, before she gracefully dismounted her own horse and grasped his arm in the customary gesture used among warriors as a greeting. “Arkadia has indeed flourished” she assessed politely with a brief gaze around as if she just now noticed the changes in the surroundings.

The other warriors followed suit and Gustus and Anya took up their positions slightly behind of Lexa, flanking their leader.

The general still caught Indra stepping forward and muttering “…only because of the help of Trikru…”, before the dark-skinned woman nodded curtly to her leader as well.

Anya chortled a laugh and she did not need to see Lexa’s expression to know that the corners of her lips had tilted upwards in the hint of a smile at the sharp comment.

Lexa was not sure if she should find it reassuring that nothing seemed amiss on first glance. They had passed a few people already, even children which were playing outside, and nothing had been out of the ordinary. Could Clarke have been overly worried? She knew though not to trust the first impression and kept her eyes and ears open attentively. It would of course be the better outcome if they had made this trip for nothing more than to allow Marie to visit her friend.

“Commander, we have prepared …” Abby addressed her directly and paused for a moment, looking around almost suspiciously.

Lexa already wanted to speak up and assure the doctor that the warriors who were accompanying them were absolutely trustworthy, when she noticed the older woman’s eyes resting on one of her people.

It took a moment until the young man which Abby was looking at finally turned and left. Lexa was not sure though what had made him leave, because she was fairly certain that the man had not been gazing at Abby at all.

Lexa turned a questioning gaze towards the others. She knew that some of Skykru still held animosity towards herself and her people, but she doubted that anyone would show it so outwardly.

Clarke had stepped a little closer to the commander, so close, that she could almost feel her breath ghosting over her skin as the blonde woman spoke up “He is one of those always being with Jaha. He took the key to the city of light as well. They all behave strangely.”

Lexa furrowed her brows. The man had definitely acted impolitely, were it any other clan of the coalition she was visiting, it would surely be seen as a highly political affront to not at least be greeted with the reverence her station reserved.

In her peripheral vision, Lexa saw Gustus and Anya step a little closer to her, as if both were preparing to protect her. Lexa did not sense any danger towards herself yet, she would have felt better now though if Marie was within their sight and not in a location she did not even know. Had one guard been enough to protect their daughter?

Although Clarke had spoken lowly, Lexa was sure that Indra would still have caught her soft words. The dark-skinned warrior had not shown any reaction though, so, she must already know about what was going on here.

As if the older woman was aware of her thoughts, Indra cleared her throat “Not just Skykru who have started to take this weird “key”” she spoke the word as if it was somehow foreign to her “a few Trikru have also taken it already and I heard rumours that this is already spreading further after vendors from Trishanakru visited Arkadia weeks ago”.

Lexa’s eyes widened slightly in alarm. If whatever this supposedly keys were had already reached as far as the lands of Trishanakru, they could basically have been spread through most of the coalition lands by now. How could this have passed their notice?

The commander, followed closely by Gustus and Anya, was quickly led through the original gate of Arkadia and into the carcass of the Ark.

Most of the commander’s warriors stayed outside of the Ark, only a handful of them accompanied them inside. The small group halted in the communal hall in which during their previous visit Marie had introduced them to this weird jello desert.

Lexa and Anya exchanged a confused gaze. The hall was filled with at least twenty people and all of them were kneeling on the ground, their eyes closed and not moving an inch.

“They have been like this for hours now” Clarke whispered suddenly from the side, startling Lexa a little.

The commander wondered why the blonde was speaking so lowly. She would have expected this people to have heard their arrival, but to her puzzlement not single one moved, as far as if she could tell, none of them had even twitched a single muscle.

“Come” Clarke whispered again, carefully touching the commander’s elbow to get her attention back.

Once they had left the communal hall behind them, Clarke cleared her throat “This has been happening since weeks now apparently and more and more people are joining. Mum is trying to …” she hesitated for a moment as if she were searching for the right words “… to wake them”.

“Wake them?” Anya echoed in rising confusion. She had already spent nights sleeping in a sitting position or even crouched uncomfortably on top of a high branch of a tree, but even she had never attempted to sleep in such a perfect kneeling stance and she highly doubted that it was possible for any human, no matter how strong or determined.

Clarke sighed “We honestly do not know what is happening to them. But they seem to fall into a kind of deep trance. When you ask them, they will all say that they were spending time in the city of light”.

By now, they had entered the clinical part of the Ark. Lexa noticed a few of the beds were occupied and all of the people who were lying there were connected to some form of machine and although they did not seem to be getting blood, something was connected to their arms as well.

“Whatever is causing them to stay in this deep trance, does not seem to care that they still have physical needs” it was Abby who spoke up now. She had noticed the commander’s almost alarmed expression at seeing so many beds of the medical bay being occupied right now. “Jackson and I take rounds through the Ark, the huts and some of the nearest forest at least once a day. But we keep on encountering people who have just collapsed from dehydration.”

“You mean that they do not wake up to eat and drink?” Anya questioned, obviously trying to understand.

Both, Clarke and Abby, nodded their heads in simultaneous agreement.

“Why have you not prohibited this spread of this keys?” Lexa turned to Kane and her tone was reproachful. As the leader of Skykru is clearly would have been his obligation to put a stop to whatever this was before it could have turned to such a clear problem.

“Abby!” a male voice called from the hall right before the doors to the medical bay were opened again “another one” the voice added.

Lexa recognized the doctor as the one who had showed her how to wash and massage Marie’s body. She remembered that his name was Jackson.

The man was carrying inside a woman, probably around Abby’s age and obviously unconscious.

Abby sighed and gave the commander an apologetic glance, before she hurried over to her colleague, going to help him take care of their newest patient.

“If this continues, we will run out of people to do the harvest soon and also run out of supplies to take care of them” Clarke surveyed heavily, gnawing at her lower lip. The blonde did not understand what was happening and she hated not having a logical understanding of it.

Lexa’s strong gaze returned to Kane though, still waiting for an answer of the man.

Markus cleared his throat and he looked almost ashamed “We have tried. I had locked these keys and the weird backpack Thelonious has been carrying around in my office. But one of them always finds a way to just steal them back and we are sure by now that it is not just Thelonious who has the keys, we have found a few by now in a number of huts around Arkadia. At first we had thought that this was just going to be some sort of religious cult…” he let his words drift off.

Lexa could see the guilt and the weight of what was happening in the man’s drawn features. For a moment she wondered if she could have stopped it if they had known sooner. Now, she also did not know for sure on how to fare from now. The situation already appeared to be very serene and threatening. If these keys were already distributed among the other clans, she knew that it would not take long before people would just start to drop dead from such a trance. No healers like here in Skykru would be in the other clans. Suddenly, it did not appear so interesting to her anymore to actually see such a key, as she already had seen Clarke’s drawing of one, but how big this problem already had gotten.

“And you have no idea what is bringing them into this state?” Lexa turned back towards Clarke, questioning her with narrowed eyes, while the gears in her mind were turning quickly.

Clarke shook her head “From a biological way this all makes zero sense” she admitted in a feeble tone “We have already tried experimenting with a few of the keys. I first thought that it could some sort of neurotransmitter drug or something bringing out hallucinations, but it isn’t and we honestly have no idea what to do now”.

“This is already spreading through Trikru?” Lexa addressed the question towards Indra, although the woman had already said so, a small part of her clung to the hope that this problem was still mostly confined to Skykru.

Indra nodded in agreement “Not just Trikru either. Yesterday a pair of siblings from the Plains Riders clan arrived here. They just walked in as if they belonged here, kneeling down with the others”.

Although Lexa had not asked for it, Clarke walked over to a cupboard, took a key from one of her pockets, opened the lock on the cupboard and pulled out a small package. She brought the package over to Lexa and opened it right in front of her, so that the commander could see the key to the city of light with her own eyes.

Lexa reached out almost on instinct, but let her fingers drop before she could touch it. This key indeed had the commander’s symbol engraved on it. Lexa still remembered how the flame had looked like before Titus had put it into her body. She had never really spoken about it with anyone, but this key had a scaring similarity to the flame residing in her own body. It was definitely not exactly the same, as the shape was different. Lexa did not know yet how or understood, but she already knew that the flame and these keys were somehow linked to each other.

Chapter 32: Chapter 276

Chapter Text

Previously in chapter 275

They arrive in Arkadia. Lexa and Anya hear about how the situation with the keys to the city of light has already gotten severe.

 

Chapter 276

Marie chattered excitedly with Maura as she followed her very first friend through a row of huts. She did not recognize any of them, as these buildings had not been standing during her last visit to Arkadia.

“How are you all getting along now with the Trikru warriors?” Marie asked as they shortly lapsed into silence. She had noticed that the huts all appeared sturdy and from what she could tell, they were furnished as well. Although she had not seen exactly what all had been left in the Ark after its crash to earth, she doubted that there had been enough material to craft furniture for everyone. She had also noticed a few of the huts being marked with symbols which were fused from Skykru and Trikru.

“Oh, a number of them are living here now. Some of the older delinquents have married with Trikru warriors” Maura answered easily. After a short moment she added “Octavia is here as well with Lincoln”.

Marie nodded, she knew that Octavia and Lincoln had married as Lexa had officially overseen the ceremony.

“She’s pregnant, you know?” Maura said, puffing out her chest at being able to tell Marie some interesting news.

Marie raised a brow as she smiled “Oh, really?” she checked. She had not heard about that yet, but she would remember to briefly visit Lincoln and Octavia to congratulate them. She wondered for a moment if this would be the first child born in a relationship between both clans. She really hoped that the peace between Skykru and the rest of the coalition would hold.

“Are you fully healthy again?” Maura asked, just stopping short in front of one hut. Little colourful drawings were hanging in the small windows, marking that there was a child living inside.

Marie nodded quickly, averting her friend’s eyes. She was still not really good at lying into someone’s face. Maura did not know about her healing talent, so, she could impossibly tell her about what really had happened. “Yeah, I was healthy right in time to really enjoy the trip” Marie tried to divert the other girl’s attention.

She would not have needed to really attempt it though. As soon as she entered the hut, she looked around in interest. Marie remembered that Maura in the past had already spent much time colouring and that her mother had fastened her drawings to the walls in their small living quarters on the Ark. The walls of the hut already appeared plastered with drawings as well.

It was obvious also that Maura’s drawing talent had increased. Marie went around slowly, inspecting her friend’s work curiously “Wow, you have become really good at this” she complimented honestly.

Maura’s cheeks had coloured a little and she looked insecure for a moment “You like them?” she checked.

Marie nodded enthusiastically “Of course” she agreed with an honest expression. She liked painting as well, but she definitely was not as good at it as Maura obviously was.

“Marie” Lily – Marau’s mother – had stepped out of a door Marie had not noticed yet.

Marie turned around quickly and she smiled carefully at Maura’s mother. Anya and Lexa had told her to be cautious around the woman if she indeed had taken such a key already. She still greeted her respectfully.

“No hug?” Lily asked her with a slightly raised brow, holding open her arms.

Marie forgot her caution momentarily as she smiled brighter and just as she used to do years ago, she sped closer to the woman and gave her a strong hug, smiling up at her warm eyes for a moment, before she let go and took a step back again.

“I have prepared lunch” the woman proclaimed before she turned back into the room she came from.

Marie watched her go for a moment. She turned back to Maura and whispered “She is acting totally normal” to her friend.

Maura sighed under her breath, taking out a chair from the table and signalling Marie to sit down as well, so that they were sitting closely. “It is not always visible” the brown-haired girl said. She obviously had wanted to say more, but she stopped and closer her mouth, when her mother stepped back into the room, carrying a large plate.

“Set the table, Maura” Lily addressed her daughter in a firm tone and the girl immediately got up.

Marie watched her friend distribute plates and cutlery indecisively, unsure if she was supposed to do anything to help or not.

“Are you well in the capitol?” Lily asked in a calm tone.

Marie nodded immediately “The training is going great” she said.

“Did you ride your horse yet?” Maura asked as she slid back into her place. She reached out and took some of the food, immediately digging in.

Marie gave the other girl a loop-sided grin “I tried” she admitted. Only recently she had tried riding a young uneducated horse, but the horse had thrown her off immediately.

She told her friend about her attempt and how she had fallen down only a few moments later. Lexa had rushed to her to make sure that she was alright, while Anya had laughed at her.

While Marie was telling her little story to Maura raptly, she noticed though that indeed Lily appeared somehow off. The woman was staring at a fixed point and she seemed to nod to something. As Marie paused in her words, she did not understand just what she was seeing.

She was not completely sure, but she thought to hear Lily mutter “they are only children and cannot help our cause” as the woman got up and cleared the table.

Marie looked over at Maura. The other girl looked upset “Mum there is no one” she said loudly, trying to get her mother’s attention, but the woman did not even seem to hear her.

“That is what you mean?” Marie asked under her breath, watching Lily from the corner of her eye.

Maura nodded and she sighed as her expression pulled into a frown.

Marie was not sure what was going on, but it did not appear threatening to her.

Maura just shook her head, obviously deciding to just ignore her mother for now. She instead began to tell Marie about now being allowed to start helping work on the fields.

Marie listened to her friend’s words in interest. She had never helped on a field, spending her time in training instead.

Both of the girl did not notice how Lily suddenly stopped right behind Marie, looking down at the skin of her neck revealed by her still shortened hair, showing the tattoo there.

“What is that on your neck child?” Lily asked in a strangely sounding tone.

Marie peered over her shoulder at Maura’s mother, unexpectedly the woman just nodded and carried the plates away in silence. She had not answered the question yet but something told her that she should not answer it.

“I told you she is acting strange” Maura hissed under her breath “this has been going on for weeks now” she added.

“I think I should go” Marie said, feeling that something was indeed off and wanting to get back to both her mums. She stood up from the chair and she startled when Lily suddenly stood in front of the exit to the hut.

“You need to take a key as well child” Lily said, holding open her palm and showing Marie the key “you have valuable information obviously”.

Marie frowned, feeling her heart beginning to beat just a little bit faster in rising alarm. She immediately shook her head. Lexa and Anya both had cautioned her to definitely not accept such a key before they knew what this obviously was.

“It is a key to the city of light child” Lily explained and Marie now noticed why she found her words so strange. Maura’s mother had never called her “child” before and the tone of her voice was unfamiliar as if someone else was speaking.

“City of light” Marie echoed, carefully trying to edge closer to the exit, hoping to be able to just push Lily away from the door and escape. She quickly shook her head at Maura, hoping that the other girl would remain sitting at the table.

“Yes, the city of light” Lily said “it is a place of eternal peace. It holds no pain, nor death”.

Marie frowned in confusion. Was there any place without pain or death? If she had learned one thing since stepping out of the dropship all these months ago, it was that there was pain and death everywhere.

“I want you to join us” Lily continued, pulling Marie from her thoughts.

Marie shook her head again though “No, thank you. I need to go now”.

Lily suddenly a knife which she had hidden behind her back “You cannot go, before you have joined us”.

“I don’t want to hurt you” Marie said in a regretful tone. She highly doubted that Maura’s mother had any fighting skills and Lexa and Anya both had taught her how to fight against someone without a weapon.

Lily’s mouth curved into a gentle smile “There is no pain in the city of light, child”.

Marie took in a deep breath, mentally going through the steps Anya had shown to her, balancing her weight onto the balls of her feet to be able to move more swiftly.

“I am sorry” she said “but I really need to go”. Marie quickly dodged Lily’s attack, using the force of the woman’s attack to bring her off balance. She thought that she had moved quick enough, but Marie hissed slightly when she noticed a cut on her upper arm. Her sleeve had been cut open and blood was seeping from a wound. When she had efficiently made Maura’s mother trip and fall down, Marie quickly ripped open the door.

She knew from experience that such an impact knocked the breath from your body and she let out a surprised shriek when Lily already got up only a second later. She had wished to ask Maura to come with her, but Marie knew that she needed to get to Lexa and Anya.

Marie slipped through the door quickly, stepping out blindly. The moment she needed to orient herself in the direction in which she hoped Lexa and Anya to be, was enough for Lily to follow her.

“Marie” the woman exclaimed behind her “you need to join us. Take the key child”.

Marie immediately shook her head again and already fell into step to get away from the hut.

She sped through the rows of huts in the direction of the Ark. She knew that she was following the right path when she passed through the original fence of Arkadia.

Marie did not know for sure where Lexa and Anya would be, but she guessed that both of her mums would be in a meeting somewhere inside of the Ark.

She stopped completely when she heard a commotion behind herself. Lily had still been yelling her name, but the woman seemed to be struggling against someone.

When Marie turned around, she recognized that one of the warriors who had travelled with them to Arkadia had taken hold of Lily and was containing the woman.

“The commander is inside” the warrior was bringing the struggling Lily towards the Ark, keeping a firm hold on her and securing both her arms.

“You need to join us Marie” Lily continued to make her case.

Marie gave the young man a nod and hurried ahead of him inside of the Ark, hoping to find someone else who could tell her just where exactly her mums were.

Luckily, Marie ran into Jackson who was making another of his rounds and he told her where to find both women.

Marie was still a little upset about what had just happened. She had no wanted to attack Maura’s mother; the woman had always been kind to her and she had many fond memories with her. She was also unsettled about his whole city of light thing.

She rushed into the medical bay of the Ark and all heads had already turned in her direction.

“What has happened, little star?” Lexa had immediately stepped closer to the door and her green eyes blazed angrily for a moment when she noticed the visible wound on their daughter’s arm.

“Maura’s mother … she …” Marie tried to begin to tell Lexa what had just happened as Anya suddenly appeared next to the commander, gazing down at the blonde girl in concern.

Marie did not really come any further, before Lily already was audible in the hall, being brought to the commander by the warrior.

“Marie” Lily immediately said when she spotted the blonde girl “You need to join us” she was still struggling against the grip the warrior had on her arms, but she did not manage to free herself.

Lexa pushed their daughter behind herself protectively, while Anya made a warning hissing tone the other woman, already having a dagger in hand.

“Wait” Abby had hurried towards them and held a syringe in her hand. Before Anya actually had attacked Lily, Abby had reached her and injected something inside her neck. The woman became limp only a moment later.

“She attacked our daughter” Lexa exclaimed in a tone brimming with anger as her eyes gleamed dangerously.

“I know” Abby agreed “She is not herself though” she tried to justify what had happened. Her eyes widened visibly when she tried to drag Lily’s body over to one bed and one of the woman’s pockets emptied. Making a lot of clicking noises, a whole bunch of keys to the city of light had fallen from Lily’s pockets.

“What has happened now?” Lexa turned back to Marie, wanting the child to tell them exactly what had transpired.

Marie took a deep breath before she detail by detail told Lexa and Anya what had happened once, she had followed Maura away from them.

Neither of them noticed how one of the people lying in a bed had just opened their eyes and were raptly listening to the child’s words.

“She was already acting sort of weird, but when she saw my tattoo she froze” Marie said.

“You mean the commander’s symbol?” Clarke checked in a surprised tone, the worry in her voice was palpable. She had feared already that this would put Lexa in danger as she of course remembered the tattoo on the commander’s body.

Marie agreed “Yeah, immediately afterwards she began saying that I need to join them. She said that with this thing I can enter the city of light. The city of light is supposed to be an eternal place of peace without pain or death.”

Clarke nodded “We have heard this before. Whatever these things are, they are not a way into any city” she argued.

Lexa and Anya bandied a gaze mutely, watching how Abby began to clean Marie’s cut and bandage it.

“It is not deep” Abby assessed with a little sigh of relief “it will heal without a scar”.

Marie did not really care if it would cause her another scar or not. The Ice queen had plastered her body with scars and she knew that she would ultimately acquire more scars sooner or later during training or in a real fight.

“I don’t wanna stay here, mommy” Marie whispered to Lexa once Abby had stepped away from them and Lexa had placed an arm around her shoulder. She felt uneasy here and whatever this city of light was, it was obviously scary.

“We will put up our tents outside of Arkadia” Lexa proclaimed decisively. She did not know how they would be to fight against this growing threat. It was different to fight against an army. An army consisted of people you could see, people you could kill and people you could also bargain with. This now was like fighting against an invisible enemy and for the first time in her reign, Lexa was indeed clueless on how to proceed from this point.

Lexa and Anya flanked Marie on their way out of the Ark.

Clarke had assured them that Raven was trying to figure out what these keys indeed were. Thus far, the young woman had had little success though. They were supposed to meet Raven later in the day to discuss what the woman had found out already.

Marie breathed a little easier once they had left the last row of huts behind. She was thankful that a tent had already been erected for them.

“Do your legs still hurt, little star?” Lexa asked in a caring tone.

Marie nodded immediately. She had nearly forgotten about it, but now that the commander had remembered her of it, she felt the pain again.

“I will give you a massage” Lexa assured her, knowing that it would ease the pain and also make it much easier for the blonde girl to move around tomorrow.

Marie smiled at that. Once they entered the tent, Lexa ordered Marie to take off her trousers and lie down on the bed.

Marie obeyed immediately. She crossed her arms under her head, hissing just a little as the cut on her arm smarted a little.

Anya sat down close to her. The child had taken off her shirt as well and the general was inspecting the child’s back. Much of her tattoos were distorted by the scars the Ice queen had left on their daughter’s body, but they were still recognizable.

Marie’s eased expression grew worried though “What about Maura?” she had left her friend alone and she was feeling bad about it now. Was the other girl eve safe with her mother? Would she make her take a key as well?

“I am sure someone will watch over her” Anya tried to appease the girl’s obvious worry. She had to admit that Skykru had grown and seemed much better organized than they had during their last visit. So, she highly doubted that a child would now be left alone to fend for themselves or even be locked up like Marie had been by her people in the past.

“What do you think this city of light is?” Marie asked curiously. Although she was afraid of what was happening, it still intrigued her that there could be an eternal place.

“That is hard to say” Anya answered with a frown. It was impossible for her to wrap her mind around what Clarke had tried to explain to them and she highly doubted that Raven would be able to explain it any better. She remembered Lily from their last visit and back then, the woman would definitely not have hurt a single hair on Marie’s head.

Marie nodded slightly, she hissed though when Lexa sat down next to her as well. “Ugh, it’s cold mommy” the girl exclaimed in a whining tone.

“Keep still” Lexa gently rebuked the blonde child “it will warm up soon enough”.

Chapter 33: Chapter 277

Notes:

Hello together,
I know that once again half a year has passed between any updates.
I have gone through yet another move and job switch. So, I simply needed more and more time to get settled with my private life, but I think that it is finally done and I hope to get back to this work now to finally bring it to an end.
Let me know if someone is actually still waiting for updates on this massive piece.

Chapter Text

Chapter 277

During the evening, Lexa and Anya had to meet again with Skykru to hear what Raven could tell them so far about these so-called keys.

Marie begrudgingly followed along. It had been comfy in the tent and she would not have minded spending a lazy afternoon and evening together with her moms in the privacy of their shared tent during their stay at the Ark, but she had also not wanted to be left behind alone in the tent. She still missed their time together at the place of Luna’s people. They had so much private and fun time together and although she liked training, she really did not like how busy both her mums were in Polis.

Marie trudged along the halls of the Ark with a bad feeling. She did not know if it was because she now felt so alienated in the narrow and cold halls she had grown up in or if she was still freaked out by what had happened with Maura’s mother earlier. Lexa and Anya had not spoken further about the keys yet. She was worried why Lily had reacted to her tattoo. It had to mean something that it was the commander’s symbol and that the same symbol had been on all of the keys which had dropped from Lily’s pockets.

“Stop dragging your feet like that, Marie” Anya addressed the girl in a rather sharp tone, looking over at her with a disapproving look.

Marie pouted at the general, but straightened a little under her glare. She subconsciously moved a little closer to Lexa though, avoiding to look at Anya for now.

“No one forced you to come along, little star” Lexa said in a much softer tone. The commander was internally agitated because what was going on within Skykru was anything but reassuring. “You can wait within the tent or even go to Maura if a guard accompanies you” the brunette proposed to offer their daughter some alternatives. The child seemed uneasy within the Ark and she did not want Marie to have to feel uncomfortable as there was no reason for her to have to be with them right now to meet Raven.

Marie shook her head though and her grey eyes took on an almost pleading look. No matter how uncomfortable she felt within the Ark now, separating from her mums felt like an even worse idea. She was thankful though that they did not return to the medical ward of the Ark and instead Clarke met them in a hall, guiding them to where Raven had set up her workplace.

As soon as they met Raven, Marie’s attention slipped and she did not care to listen to the ongoing conversation. She looked around the room instead. A large table took up most of the place and it seemed to be overflowing with a variety of things. It looked as if Raven was working on several projects at once.

Her gaze finally settled onto what appeared to be a whole pile of these keys to the city of light. A few of them had obviously been smashed or somehow tried to be dismantled by Raven, while others still appeared intact.

Marie stepped closer to one of these keys. The object seemed to be flying, surrounded by what appeared to be wires which emitted a weird blue kind of bright light.

“Don’t touch that, kid!” Raven suddenly called out, interrupting the conversation which was ongoing.

Marie startled and pulled back her hand immediately. She had just been curious and it looked intriguing in a fascinating kind of way. Earlier when Lily had dropped the keys, she had not closely inspected them. She remembered a drawing on a page in one of the commander’s journals. If she remembered correctly than it also had been in one of Becca’s journals. She had not understood any of the notes written beside the drawing. The flame and this thing definitely were not the same though. The shape was one thing Marie identified as slightly different from the drawing she remembered.

She had asked Lexa once where the flame now was and when she would be allowed to see it. The answer she had gotten though, prompted Marie to wish to never have to see the flame. Lexa would have to die as the flame was only removed from the commander’s body upon death.  

The symbol on this key looked exactly like the tattoo Lexa and she had on their necks though and Marie was sure that there had to be a reason for it.

She walked back over to Anya. Both of her mums seemed to be listening raptly to what Raven had to say. Marie could tell though how tense Anya was; the general stood absolutely straight and her fingers were tightened on the handle of her dagger prompting her knuckles to become white under the tension.

“Can you tell me again what happened earlier with Lily?” Raven suddenly addressed Marie.

The blonde girl looked up at Raven as she had been leaning slightly against Anya. The general had let go of the dagger and instead placed an arm around her daughter’s shoulders, calming both of them.

Marie enumerated again what had transpired earlier with Maura and her mother. She emphasised how Lily had begun to really try and convince her to take the key after spotting the tattoo on her neck.

Raven walked around Marie and inspected the tattoo herself, holding up one of the keys as reference. “Looks exactly the same…” Raven agreed “…weird…”.

“You said this symbol has been used as an emblem of all the commanders?” the mechanic turned back to Lexa.

Lexa gave a slight nod before she turned around and brushed her long brunette hair over one of her shoulders, revealing her own neck and her matching tattoo.

Clarke had already seen the tattoo many times, but somehow in the bright and unnatural light of the Ark’s electric lamps, she noticed a faint scar underneath Lexa’s tattoo. It looked like a weird position for a wound acquired in a fight and the scar also appeared to form an absolutely precise straight line.

“Lexa, there is a scar under your tattoo” Clarke said in a thoughtful tone, intrigued where this may have come from.

Lexa only nodded though “I know. I got it on the day of my ascension to become the next commander.”

Raven was looking back and forth between Lexa and the key in her hand with a deeply concentrated expression, she mumbled something and Marie only caught a few words here and there, as the mechanic started to pace up and down the small length of the room.

“What if this actually is some kind of AI?” Raven turned to Clarke.

Marie tilted her head slightly sideways. She distinctly remembered having heard the term and she knew that it stood for “artificial intelligence” but she never really understood just what it actually was.

Lexa and Anya though both were lost as Raven and Clarke started to discuss this possibility.

Clarke immediately said that it would make sort of sense as Jaha was carrying a weird backpack with him which emitted light and the man seemed afraid that it could get wet. It would also explain why the people who took the key or rather the chip were in dazes and did not feel pain. An AI must have corrupted their minds.

Raven and Clarke were quickly engaged in a lively discussion of how they had seen Jaha and his followers act and how an AI which controlled the people who took the chips was the explanation for their weird behaviour.

Lexa obviously was trying her hardest to follow what was being said and the commander’s face was set into a concentrated scowl.

“There has to be some kind of correlation between these” Raven held up the chip in her hand again “and what you call the flame”.

Although Anya had not understood most of what Raven and Clarke had just discussed, she sensed that the line of discussion was not good. How could they fight against an enemy which they did not see?

Lexa pressed her lips together. She did not know anything about AIs, programs and whatever the two Skykru women just had said. The flame had been an essential part of her upbringing as the future commander and she still could remember the very moment during which she had received it within her body at her ascension ceremony. It had been a part of her since this day and it would become part of the next commander as well. Through the flame she sometimes had been able to communicate with the past commanders.

“You said that whatever this is controls the people who take it” Lexa repeated what she had understood in a cautious tone.

“It seems so” Raven answered “I would need to somehow get into the program to tell for sure”. She was inspecting the little chip within her hands again as her mind already whirled with ideas on how to solve this mystery.

Once Lexa and Raven started to speak to each other again, Marie turned to Anya asking the general in a quiet tone if she could go outside and visit Maura again. Before the general had already assured her that her friend would surely be fine, but Marie was not fully buying into it.

Anya in the end agreed on the condition that Marie was accompanied by one of the guards which were positioned just outside of the door. The blonde girl just slightly rolled her eyes in mute answer, but immediately turned to leave, giving Lexa a brief grin over her shoulder in farewell.

~ ~ ~

Marie hurried through the mostly empty halls of the Ark and her foot steps echoed loudly against the metal walls. She did not speak with the guard who followed her right now and just ignored him.

On the way outside they passed by the large communal hall which was used for eating together in the Ark. Marie halted in the entrance to it, remembering how she had been here before with Lexa and Anya and tried to get them to eat the Jello as well after the war against the Mountain.

At first, she had thought the large room to be empty as it was not time for any meal currently, but in one quarter of it a crowd had gathered together. Marie hesitated in the entrance and just took a mute look of the people there.  

All of them were kneeling on the ground and their eyes were closed. Marie would have suspected them to be meditating like she had seen Lexa do in the past. But she let out a startled shriek when all of the people suddenly seemed to open their eyes at once and turned their heads towards her.

The guard next to her also had his hands on his sword, ready to step up and protect the commander’s daughter.

Marie immediately fled from the entrance and hurried her steps even more. It thankfully did not sound as if anyone was following them currently and she let out a relieved bout of breaths as soon as the blue sky spanned above them again and she could inhale clean air.

Unexpectedly though, Maura was not alone in the small house when Marie enthusiastically pulled open the door.

“Marie, what a pleasure” Jaha in person had been sitting with Maura at the table.

Marie furrowed her brows in surprise. Thelonious Jaha had been one of the last people she would have expected to be with Maura right now. She tried looking past the man’s bulky body and take a closer look at her friend, but she could see her sitting there.

The door just fell shut behind her and Marie felt her mouth run dry, sensing that she was in danger.

“I … just came … to see Maura” Marie exclaimed, stumbling a little over the words.

“She is right here” Jaha said in a calm tone, stepping to the side just a little bit.

Marie immediately stepped around the man, worriedly looking at her friend.

Maura gave Marie a weak smile. It was obvious that the other girl was upset about the situation. “Thelonious has told me that my mother is being held in the medical bay” the other girl spoke up in a sad tone.

“That is why I wanted to check on you” Marie nodded as she knew what had happened of course.

Maura gave her friend a shaky thankful smile, but Marie noticed that the other girl was toying around with one of the keys to the city of light in her hands.

Thelonious seemed to be nodding at someone only he could see before he turned his attention back to the two girls “Remember what I have said, Maura” he said ominously, turning on his heel and leaving the house quickly.

Marie blinked behind him in confusion before she looked back at Maura “Are you okay?” she asked.

Maura nodded but her eyes were focused on the little chip within her fingers “Jaha said that my mother needs help and that I can only help her if I join them”.

Marie immediately shook her head “Maura you cannot take this thing” she exclaimed quickly and her grey eyes bore into her friend’s brown ones.

“But my mum…” Maura said in a defeated tone.

“You are not alone, Maura” Marie tried to convince her friend to not take the key. She reached out towards the chip in Maura’s hands, intent on taking it with her.

Maura closed her hands around it though “She is all that I have” she said in a tone laced with desperation. “Mum seemed to have been well enough after she took it. It cannot be that bad” the girl reasoned, obviously trying to convince herself.

Marie shook her head “Clarke and Raven think this contains some weird AI program which controls everyone who took the keys.”

To Marie’s confusion, Maura’s brown eyes widened in shock though and she firmly closed her fist around the key.

“What is wrong?” Marie asked with wide grey eyes.

Mauro shook her head though and before Marie could have reacted, the girl brought her hand to her mouth, swallowing down the key without any hesitation.

“Maura, no!” Marie shrieked, jumping up from the chair in shock “Say something, please. Are you okay?”

Maura’s eyes had closed for a long moment and as she opened them again, her expression showed peace “Of course, I am, Marie” she answered in a weirdly calm tone, standing up as well “I am going to see my mum now”.

Chapter 34: Chapter 278

Notes:

From here on starts newer chapters now. And I will really try to continue writing until this story is considered complete :)

Chapter Text

Chapter 278

Marie remained standing in Maura’s and her mother’s small house indecisively for a moment. Maura had left one of the keys to the city of light behind on the table.

She picked up the small item and turned it over carefully in her fingertips, holding the chip-like thing up into the light sunrays filtering through the windows.

Marie was worried about how calm Maura had suddenly appeared after she had ingested the weird key. She let the thing glide into the small pocket of her coat, thinking that it may be useful later.

She got out of the house a few moments later, knowing that she should better go and look for both of her mums. The guard which Lexa had tasked with accompanying her, was waiting just outside. The man did not say anything, but it was obvious that he was curious about what might have transpired inside the small house.

Marie walked towards the rest of the Ark with the guard by her side, both of them silent. For some reason, she could not see anyone of Skykru being outside currently and Marie felt a shiver run through her frame. Something was off and she sensed that.

Once they got into the Ark and the air changed from fresh and crisp to the weirdly metallic and somehow disinfected quality, she had grown up surrounded with, Marie hesitated.

Jaha was waiting for her right behind the entrance and the man was not alone either.

Marie recognized Maura and her mother, together with Jackson and many others from Skykru standing behind him.

The guard next to Marie reached for his sword, when all of them turned to look at Marie at exactly the same moment as if an invisible voice had just given them a command and all of them executed it in perfect union.

Marie felt the hairs on the back of her neck rise and a shiver ran through her body, as the memory of the same scene happening in the dining hall came to her mind.

“Marie, we have been waiting for you” it was Jaha who broke the tensed silence. His features were calm and his voice was strangely inviting; he even had a warm smile on his features, but it did not reach his dark eyes and they seemed to remain weirdly empty.

“The commander’s daughter has nothing to say to you” the guard answered for Marie before the girl even opened her mouth and he stepped right in front of the girl’s smaller frame, raising his sword protectively. His English had been heavily accentuated as it was the case for many of the survivors.

Jaha’s smile widened just a little and he held up his hands in a peaceful gesture “Oh, there is no need for violence now. Once everyone has joined us in the city of light, there will never be any need for bloodshed anymore. We merely wish to speak to Marie.”

Marie shook her head behind the guard’s back “But I do not wanna speak to you, Jaha. I just want to go to my mums”. The blonde girl tried to keep her voice steady, but the whole atmosphere was horribly off.

“Your mother is not here, Marie, but I can bring you to her” Jaha said in a vague tone.

Marie tilted her head to the side with a frown. She wondered just who exactly Jaha was referring to. She highly doubted that Lexa and Anya would have separated. Or had something happened while she had been out in Maura’s house? She pushed that thought away though, surely Anya or Lexa would have gotten her immediately in that case, neither of them would leave her behind.

“Where is the commander?” the guard ignored Jaha’s words and there was a threatening growl within his tone as his fingers tightened around the pommel of his sword.

Marie stepped just a little bit closer to the guard and stood on her tiptoes “Maybe Lexa and Anya left and are outside in the tent?” she whispered into the man’s ears.

The guard shook his head though. The commander’s tent had been visible on their way and there had not been any guard stationed outside of the tent which could only mean that the commander was not there.

Weirdly enough, Jaha and the others let them pass when the guard motioned Marie forward.

Marie’s heart was pounding elatedly within her chest and the blood was thrumming through her ears loudly.

She could hear Jaha and “his followers” walking right behind them and when she glanced over her shoulder, Marie saw all of them walking along the hall behind them, all of them in perfect union. They kept a slight distance to them though and were obviously not rushing.

“Your mommy is not there” Maura’s voice made Marie turn around fully.

She frowned at her oldest friend. She could not remember if she had told the brunette about the nicknames she used for Lexa and Anya in one of her letters or not. The fact that she knew them obviously made Marie pause.

The guard pushed open the door to Raven’s workshop. Chaos greeted them. The tables had been thrown over and the floor was littered with Raven’s gadgets and tools.

Marie turned towards the door when she heard the guard gasp in front of her. She pushed by his side through the door and looked around the small room with wide grey eyes. Her gaze fell on a wet spot on the metal ground and when she bent down, Marie sucked in a deep breath. The wet puddle was black blood.

“What happened here?” she looked up at the guard with worry pulling at her features. There was no sight of Lexa or Anya, neither of Clarke or Raven or the others who had been there earlier.

“Your mother is in the city of light, Marie, join us” Jaha spoke up again, stepping into the room behind them.

Marie whirled around to the dark-skinned man, feeling the commander’s blood wetly on the tips of her fingers.

The guard directly placed himself between Marie and Jaha again, shielding his protegee from the Skykru man.

“Where is the commander?” the man repeated his previous question and his tone had gotten hard as he narrowed his eyes at Jaha.

“The city of light is the answer” Jaha said in a calm tone and when he reached into his pocket, he pulled out one of the keys to the city of light again, holding it out towards the guard “Join us now”.

“Never” the guard retorted with a snarl and he took a step closer to Jaha with his sword drawn, placing it directly on the man’s throat without applying any pressure just yet.

Jaha looked directly back at him without bating an eye.

Marie watched the dark-skinned man step directly into the blade with wide grey eyes. Blood began to trickle down the man’s throat.

“There is no pain or death in the city of light” Jaha said, his voice just as calm as before. His dark eyes left the guard’s features and he looked over the man’s shoulder down at Marie “You need to join us now, child, to be with your mother again”.

“Run!” the guard threw over his shoulder, pushing Jaha away from himself, intent on fighting their way threw out of the Ark.

Marie did not get very far though. Behind her she could see the guard fighting against five Skykru at once. He had taken two down, which just stood up again a second later though, before one of them had stepped behind him and a long blade suddenly protruded from the guard’s chest.

She had observed impressive things done by warriors since she landed on Earth. People were able to continue to fight with deep wounds, broken bones or other injuries, but you could always tell that someone had been wounded. The people who followed Jaha and who had been brought down by the guard, only to stand up a second later, did not show such a behaviour though.

Marie remained frozen on the spot. Jackson was now standing directly in front of her and she could see numerous other people standing right behind him as well. There just was no way out anymore.

When she turned back around, Marie was directly faced with Maura.

The brunette girl smiled at her and the key to the city of light was lying on the palm of one of her small hands, holding it open as an offer to her friend. “Take it, little star” the other girl said in a sweet tone.

Marie’s eyes widened even more at the use of the nickname Lexa and Anya only used for her. She also could not remember if she ever had mentioned this to her friend, but somehow, she doubted it.

When she carefully stretched out her fingers towards her friend’s hands, Marie felt her stomach roll uncomfortably at the sight of Lexa’s drying blood on her fingers.

Her fingers shook when she took the key from Maura. There was absolutely no sign of Lexa and Anya. Were they dead? Had they been attacked? Had they really joined the city of light?

Jaha was standing right behind Maura, glancing down at Marie with a smile. Blood was still trickling down his throat in a fine trail as the man had not bothered to stop the blood flow. He nodded with a pleased and encouraging expression when Marie closed her fingers around the key finally.

Marie brought it to her lips with shaking fingers. Internally, she was unsure of what she was doing currently. A small voice within her mind was still hoping that Lexa and Anya were somewhere outside of the Ark, but the blood on the ground was worrying her deeply.

She looked into Maura’s eyes while she placed the weird thing on her tongue. Marie felt the thing dissolve on her tongue and something seemed to be moving on her tongue. Marie doubled over, trying to spew this weird thing out, but it was too late.

Everything went dark around her a few seconds later and Marie only distinctly felt someone’s hands catch her before she fell to the ground.

~ ~ ~

Marie opened her eyes an undefined time later. She sat up immediately, looking around herself.

The first thing she noticed was that her fingers were not stained in dark blood anymore, in fact, her fingers were perfectly clean.

Marie frowned when she could not recognize the bed she had been lying on. The sheets on the bed had a strangely bright colour and a flowery pattern was on it. The walls around her were not made of metal, but actually a pure white.

Sunlight was falling into the room and Marie walked over to it. She placed her hand carefully on the large window, actually one complete wall seemed to be made entirely of glass. Her breath stuck within her throat at the sight which greeted her outside of the window.

She was looking down on a city. A city she had never seen. There was one building next to the other. The buildings were high and made of stone, metal and lots and lots of glass.

When Marie looked down towards the ground, she saw real paths, made out of large bright tiles. Plants, bushes and trees were strewn next to the paths and Marie could see people walking around. In clothes she had never seen before.

“Mommy?” Marie turned away from the window. She distinctly remembered that she had been searching for her mother somewhere, but everything was weirdly hazy in her memory. She tried to think of her mommy, but weirdly enough, she could not come up with a face of the person she was searching for.

“Marie?” a young female voice called out of the suddenly opened door.

Marie needed a second to place the face which greeted her. It was Maura. But something was off. She had never seen the brunette in such an attire or at least she could not remember.

“Maura…” she retorted in a confused tone, letting her grey eyes travel over the other girl “…what is…” she tried to formulate a question.

Maura frowned as well for a moment, but she shook her head a moment later “Are you not ready for school yet?” the other girl asked. She turned slightly, showing off the bright pink backpack she was carrying on her back.

“School?” Marie echoed in rising confusion.

“Yeah, of course, dummie, school” Maura repeated “Mr. Jackson won’t be happy if we are late for first period again”.

The brunette stepped past Marie and took up a backpack in a bright blue colour, pushing it into Marie’s arms.

“Come on now, we’ll be late” Maura motioned Marie out of the door.

Marie followed the brunette out of the room with a frown still on her features. Why could she not remember where she was? Or what she had done yesterday? She also could not remember school either. What had happened to her?

Chapter 35: Chapter 279

Chapter Text

Chapter 279

Anya watched Marie leave them with Raven with a sinking feeling. She could feel that something was about to happen.

Or it may have been the ongoing discussion which was granting on her nerves.

Raven sighed deeply. There was obviously some kind of connection between the keys to the city of light and whatever “flame” the commander’s body was harbouring. She was not sure if Lexa indeed had no idea about what this thing indeed was or if she was just trying to protect their culture.

This would obviously not be the first time either. She did have the hypothesis that the keys may interact with Lexa’s blood. She was interested anyway about this black blood and what other properties it had in comparison to their red blood.

She had already tried what happened with the keys when they were put in blood. She has used her own. The mantle of the particular key had melted away and it seemed that some nanostructures were inside the key.

Anya ground her teeth together firmly when Lexa immediately agreed to give a sample of her blood for Raven to experiment with. The scene reminded her of what had happened with Tris. How desperate she had been and how alienated when Clarke wanted her own blood to try and save her young second.

She watched with narrowed eyes how Clarke now draw some blood from Lexa’s arm and she could not fail to notice how both women’s eyes connected for long moments. For a second, she wondered if the two would ever find back together. She did not like to admit it, but in her own way Clarke was good for Lexa.

Lexa held a piece of gauze to the place where Clarke had just drawn blood as instructed by the blonde doctor.

Raven immediately snatched the syringe with the black blood from Clarke’s hand. She had seen the commander bleed before, otherwise she would probably have gasped out loud. The liquid was indeed as black as the darkest night. She knew for a fact that Clarke as a doctor was also highly interested in the blood.

“Has anyone without this black blood ever tried to take this “flame””? the mechanic turned her head over her shoulder.

Anya’s features darkened. Such a question was unheard of and highly offensive.

Lexa remained calm though. “Yes” she replied honestly, remembering a passage within on of the other commanders’ journals.

Raven turned around fully “And?” she questioned with a hint of annoyance within her tone.

Anya ground her teeth together more firmly. The mechanic was lucky that they were not within Polis or she would have already been punished for her insolence.

“The flame cannot be taken by anyone but a Nightblood” the commander answered calmy, not bating an eye.

Raven’s brows furrowed. The answer was not really clear, but she suspected that the other AI was programmed in a way to only interact with black blood. Right now, she had the hope that Lexa’s black blood would somehow be recognized as superior by this key and that they could get into the city of light this way. But it was all theory currently.

Lexa took a step back, standing right beside Anya again. She could sense how tense her general was. She was not feeling at ease either and the developments they had thus fur discovered in Arkadia alarmed everything within her. She started to fear for her coalition again. Their peace had not lasted long yet and she really wished for some stability for her people to prosper finally.

Both of them watched how Raven took the syringe filled with the commander’s dark blood and let a few drops of it fall onto the key to the city of light which was floating somehow.

Immediately the thing reacted. Its shape seemed to melt away and it seemed as if some thin tentacles were feeling around for more of the black blood.

“Does it look the same with our blood?” Clarke asked, tilting her head slightly as she scrutinized what remained from the key.

Raven shook her head and nodded at the same time “It is similar, but the reaction now is much stronger. There definitely is a difference…” she paused for a moment, caught in her thoughts again “…it may work…” she muttered to herself.

Anya turned her head to the door. Without any kind of window to assess the light outside, it was nearly impossible to judge how much time had passed since Marie had left them. It felt to her as if they were waiting for an eternity already.

“Marie still has not returned” the general lowly said to the commander.

Lexa inclined her head slightly in acknowledgement “She should return soon”.

~ ~ ~

But Marie never returned; Clarke and Raven were still discussing back and forth if Lexa could be the solution to the possible danger the city of light posed to everyone.

Suddenly there was a loud turmoil outside in the hall and it only took another moment before the door to Raven’s small room was pushed open forcefully.

The guards which had remained outside in the hall laid slain on the ground. Anya had barely caught a glimpse of them before a bunch of Skykru burst into the room.

One of the men leading the crowd caught her attention immediately. A guard must have impaled his sword through the man’s chest, but it did not seem to impair the injured man one bit.

It was evident within a second that fighting would not help them this time. They were outnumbered immensely and for once retreat seemed their only option.

Lexa had positioned herself in front of Clarke protectively.

All of the men who had gathered inside started to speak in union “We want the commander”. Their voices were monotone in a weird way and their expressions calm which was not typical for Skykru.

Raven had been attacked by one also when the man had spotted the syringe with dark blood in her hand. The syringe fell to the floor and it shattered, splashing the ground in black drops of blood.

“Is there any way out?” Anya had pushed the man away from Raven and looked at the dark-haired mechanic questioningly and in urgency.

Raven pointed upwards.

Right above them there was a hatch.

“Go” Anya ordered, pulling out her sword, intent on giving the two Skykru and her commander time to flee.

But Lexa would not have it, she urged Raven and Clarke to proceed.

Together with Anya they both managed to push out the Skykru for long enough to shut the door and try to block it with a cabinet which they turned over in haste.

Lexa had suffered a cut to one of her arms and blood was dripping from her fingertips of the injured arm.

“Merely a graze” she assured Anya quickly.

They both recognized immediately that their little makeshift barricade would not hold out long.

Clarke and Raven had pulled a table right under the hatch and the two Skykru women were climbing up right now.

“Marie is still out there” Anya assessed in a clearly worried tone. She was almost certain now that something must have happened to their daughter in the meantime.

“You cannot search for her now!” Raven called back through the open hatch.

A loud clash from outside the door and how much it shook under the impact showed clearly how intent the group of Skykru was to get to the commander.

Both the commander and general were visibly reluctant to leave now. But even they had to recognize that they were gravely outnumbered. They were also used to enemies who once wounded would fight less severely, but someone who did not feel pain and was less limited could even be dangerous to them, no matter how much more skilled they may be.

Anya insisted on hoisting Lexa up and exiting through the hatch as the last person. Just as she had pulled herself up and pulled her feet out, the door gave away under the force of the Skykru trying to enter.

Lexa pulled Anya away and Clarke quickly closed the hatch again, hoping to give them at least some more moments to retreat before the Skykru group would follow them once again.

“This way” Raven motioned them away from the entrance of the carcass of the Ark. She knew that there were lose panels in the fence on the backside and they would be able to slip out there. She only hoped that no one who had taken the key would run into them.

She was certain by now that this key must give access to a kind of virtual reality with the name of the “city of light”. It would explain how the people seemed to be able to communicate with each other without standing next to each other and how all suddenly moved in union as if they had been given orders from someone invisible.

Lexa and Anya went ahead of Clarke and Raven, simply jumping down the distance instead of looking for somewhere to climb.

For a moment Lexa was reminded of their jump away from the pauna all those months ago, but thankfully she did not make a bad landing this time.

She had already drawn her sword again, when she recognized movements in the darkness ahead of them.

It was Kane’s voice who called out “We have not taken the key” he proclaimed and held up his hand.

Anya stood directly next to her former second now and realized that Kane was not alone.

“Sinclair” Raven recognized one of them immediately and she was happy to see him. She hoped that he may have some ideas on how they could proceed.

“We need to leave immediately” Kane had stepped closer and helped down Clarke at the moment and his dark eyes were worried “We just managed to get out. Jaha is giving out the key to everyone now and who doesn’t agree to take it, is killed”.

Raven already worked on opening the lose panels and a moment later an opening was created within the fence.

Clarke stopped in her tracks when she heard her mother loudly calling for her.

Kane shook his head though and pulled on the young woman’s arm “She has taken the key as well”.

Another figure came closer to them and Lexa already hoped that it may be Marie, but as it got closer, she noticed that the figure was too large to be the blonde child.

It turned out to be Bellamy. The young man had a bleeding gash on his forehead “Quick” he urged them on in an almost desperate tone.

“Marie…” Anya said again, not willing to leave without their daughter.

Bellamy shook his head with a pained grimace “I just saw her being carried into the Ark by Jaha. If she has not taken the key yet, she will soon”.

“Lexa, we need to go, they are after you” Clarke turned worried blue eyes on the grounder leader. She did not know what they would do to the brunette if they got her, but she did not wish to think of it either.

~ ~ ~

In the meantime, Alie had access to all of Marie’s memories, seeing the commander’s tattoo on Lexa’s neck through the child’s eyes.

Marie had followed Maura out of the apartment and down a hall. The building looked to be in pristine condition and when she looked down at herself, she saw that she was dressed in light well-fitting clothes. Something about this was off to Marie, but whenever she thought to recognize what was wrong, her thoughts drifted away.

“What is on your mind now?” Maura asked her friend with an eye roll.

Marie stopped in her steps. They had just reached the exit to the building and she could see the city spanning out in front of the door.

“I don’t know” she answered carefully “Something feels wrong…” she mused under her breath. When she looked outside, she could see a number of people walking around. All of them were dressed in similar attire as she was.

Maura frowned openly at the other girl, not understanding at all what she meant.

Alie, being connected to all of their brains, was alerted to the communication between the two girls and suddenly materialized herself right at the exit to the building, opening the door for them.

Marie startled strongly at the sudden appearance of the woman in the red dress.

“Go ahead, Maura” Alie addressed one of the girls in a decisive but kind tone “Marie will join you soon”.

Maura only inclined her head in acknowledgement, walking through the open door immediately, not even casting a glance at her friend.

Marie frowned and she felt her heartrate pick up slightly. Something was most definitely wrong. “Who are you?” she questioned in a suspicious tone. Suddenly images flashed through her mind of a woman with piercing blue eyes.

“I am Alie, child” Alie greeted the blonde girl, completely ignoring the girl’s obvious signs of fear and distress. She was confused as to why the child had access to her memories still, when she was the one controlling their thoughts within the city of light. She had hoped to find knowledge of the other program within the girl’s memories, but she had unfortunately not found anything useful, beside the girl’s memory of the commander’s tattoo.

“Alie” Marie echoed in an uncertain tone, tilting her head slightly and subconsciously taking a small step back from her, when the woman extended one of her hands in her direction.

Alie let her hand drop immediately again and her otherwise controlled features scrutinized the child. No one who had joined her in the city of light so far had shown her any negative reaction.

“You should be going to school” Alie changed the subject and motioned to the door which she still held open.

Marie blinked in obvious confusion and suddenly other children appeared at the entrance of the door. Children who Marie was sure to never have seen before.

But they all claimed to go to school with her and before she could really decide on what to do, she was pulled along by them and away from Alie.

Alie watched the blonde girl be lead away with a deep frown. This had never happened before. People who took the key usually fell for her programming immediately. At least within the city of light. She had seen people now noticing outside of the city of light that they had lost memories, but no one had shown any emotional reaction within the city of light. This place was supposed to be the ultimate salvation and free of feeling after all.

It would almost be interesting to Alie to know how the girl would act in the rest of the world. She had the feeling already that her control over the girl would be less tight.

She called Jaha back into the city of light immediately.

Jaha now stood with Alie in front of a large skyscraper in the city of light.

“The child has not proven as helpful as I had hoped” Alie informed Jaha “But we will need access to the commander.”

Even if the girl may not be of much assistance within the city of light, she had of course seen the connection the girl had to the commander.

Humans were weak and ruled by feelings. The girl would be the perfect thing to lure out the commander.

Chapter 36: Chapter 280

Notes:

Let's see if anyone is actually still looking out for updates.
I have re-read my own story during the last few weeks and it still pains me that I managed to finish this.
I am holding on to the plan to wrap it up like it deserves. Chapter 280 and 281 had already been written by me over a year ago. I will start writing chapter 282 next weekend. I hope to be able to write at least one chapter each week.

Chapter Text

Chapter 280

Lexa felt more than just a little bit conflicted as she pushed her body through the small opening Raven had created within the fence behind the carcass of the Ark. She knew for a fact without asking her general, that the older woman could not be faring any better though. Her heart was aching within her chest and her mind was in turmoil.

If the things the Skykru had told them would proof correct than this threat the city of light imposed was already much graver than any of them had expected.

Everything within her mind was screaming that she needed to turn around and get their daughter out. But the logical part of her mind knew that doing so would be suicide right now. When this thing was as powerful as it seemed to her, then she personally needed to be protected more than ever right now.

Anya was grinding her teeth together forcefully and harsh lines of worry were etched deeply into her serene features as she stepped up beside Lexa on the other side of the fence.

From afar they could hear others coming closer and Anya felt the hair on the nap of her neck stand up. Something felt horribly off.

Clarke’s blue eyes were sad and worried as she lightly placed a hand on one of the commander’s arms “We need to go” she urged under her breath.

Bellamy, Raven, Kane and Sinclair had followed them on the other side of the fence and Raven was in the process of closing the hole again. She had the slim hope that none of the people who had taken the key would know of its existence, giving them an advantage to be able to steal away hopefully totally undetected.

“You are bleeding” Clarke assessed and her voice took on a tone even more worried now. Flashes of seeing Lexa almost bleed to death many weeks ago now, rushed through her mind unbidden. This time Marie was also not there to heal and revive the brunette leader.

She could not wrap her mind around the fact that her mother had taken the key to the city of light finally. The woman had been so steadfast in her opinion that this thing could not be true. What had changed all of a sudden? Clarke unfortunately had no answer and she knew that only her mother could tell her. Her mother had told her before that this key did not just seem to take away the pain from people but also that it messed with their minds. She remembered now that Abby had specifically enumerated that Jaha could not recall Well’s name or his existence altogether.

Horror settled into her mind as she concluded that there was a real possibility for Marie to have lost her memories of the commander and general again. She was uncertain just how much more pain and loss the two stoic Trikru women could actually take before their minds would finally break.

Lexa narrowed her eyes at the blue-eyed Skykru woman. She had watched the horror settle on the blonde’s features, but she did not know the origin of it. Tentatively she reached out and lightly squeezed the other woman’s hand, still lying lightly on one of her arms.

Clarke blinked her eyes at the commander at the unexpected touch. She felt her heart constrict painfully within her chest at the depth of feelings flitting through her green eyes as the leader was looking at her. During the short time at which she had not resided within the capitol, she had noticed just how much she had missed Lexa. Previously she had thought that seeing the commander on a daily basis was just unnecessary torture, but not seeing her at all had turned out to be even worse.

She forced a calmer expression back onto her features. Clarke could fathom just how Lexa and Anya were feeling about leaving Marie behind after all. Her heart gave a quick lurch when Lexa squeezed her hand one last time before the commander took a small step back and closer to Anya instead.

The exchange had not taken much longer than a minute or two and Raven stepped up behind Clarke “Ready to go?” the mechanic checked. It was obvious that the dark-haired Skykru girl was trying deliberately to lighten the mood with her comical tone, but it seemed forced at best.

Clarke nodded in agreement and with hushed words they quickly agreed that letting Anya led them to a cave nearby was the wisest decision. Although Skykru had been around this land now for several months, they had not discovered this particular cave yet, making it the best hideout for now.

~ ~ ~

The place was rather close to Arkadia and the group travelled in silence through the darkness and the woods.

Raven was walking next to Clarke and behind the commander and Anya who were leading the group. The dark-haired girl continued to pierce the commander’s back with a calculating frown. She was trying to piece together what it could mean that the keys to the city of light and what the grounders called “the flame” looked so similar.

She was fairly certain now that both were some kind of AI. This would at least explain why Abby had not been able to find any changes in the blood of the people who had agreed to take the key before. But how could such a thing work?

She had seen how the people behaved who had taken the key for a while now. It was obvious that whatever the flame was, was different. The commander did not suddenly fall into a trance and she never had appeared as if she was guided by some invisible force either.

She did not know if it would be a problem to ask about it, but she needed to know more if they were to solve this riddle. Raven was also positive that both grounder women would be less inclined now to lash out that they knew for Marie to have taken such a key as well.

“Commander” Raven called out after a while of silently walking behind them. It seemed as if no one had been following them from the Ark yet, so their escape had obviously worked.

The only inclination that Lexa had heard the Skykru woman at all was a slight tilt to her head though and she did not say anything yet.

Raven furrowed her brow. Did the leader not wish to talk to her right now?

Clarke snorted slightly under her breath “She heard you and she’s waiting for you to state what you want”. She explained with a slight laugh to her friend.

Anya rolled her eyes at Lexa, but the commander let herself fall back slightly and now walked on Raven’s other side.

Raven seemed a little unnerved, but she did not comment on it.

“What is it, Raven kom Skykru?” the commander questioned in her most official tone, face stoic and expressionless.

Raven furrowed her brow deeper for a moment before she turned her gaze fully on the commander “This flame…” she began and her voice turned even more cautious when she noticed the brunette leader stiffen next to her “…how does it work?”.

It was Lexa’s turn to look slightly confused now. She did not know for sure on how to answer this question.

“The flame is passed down the line of commanders” she finally answered after a long moment of silence “It carries their spirits” she added.

Raven blinked at the ground woman owlishly. She was absolutely certain that whatever the flame really was, it most definitely did not contain any kind of spirit. What she could imagine though was that the bearer of this “flame” could leave behind an imprint of themselves within the AI. Her brows furrowed together in deep thought. Could it be that this AI Lexa must carrying was actually developing with its host?

They reached the cave a little while later and Anya quickly went around, kindling a small fire to warm them. She thankfully found a few water canteens in the back of the cave and set out to fill them up at the stream nearby. They could worry about food tomorrow.

Lexa remained within the cave with Clarke. The blonde Skykru girl had insisted to look after the commander’s wounds.

Raven was standing together with Sinclair and they were discussing lowly just what they already knew about the city of light and the flame, trying to work out a strategy on how to take down this threat.

“You have to strip out the shirt for me to assess your arm, Lexa” Clarke said in a soft tone, standing close to the commander and waiting for the other woman to undress.

Although Lexa said “It is merely a graze, Clarke” the brunette still obediently took off her shirt and turned in a way that the wounded arm was facing the blonde.

Clarke already reached out and lightly fell along the bleeding gash on the commander’s arm “It is not just a graze” she tutted, but her tone carried some worry again. The wound was deep and still bleeding. Within the Ark, she would have insisted on sewing the wound, but here without any supplies, the only thing she could offer was to try and clean the wound and binding it tightly in the hopes that the bleeding would stop soon.

She assessed that cleaning the wound would need to wait until the bleeding had stopped. With an apologetic glance, Clarke stepped even closer and firmly pressed a piece of fabric she had ripped from her own shirt against the wound.

The only inclination that the procedure may be painful was the commander’s jaw clenching together slightly.

“I am sorry, Lexa” Clarke said honestly as she continued to press on the bleeding wound. She hated the feeling of Lexa’s black blood slowly saturating the tissue and finally feeling the dark liquid on her fingertips.

“I have been wounded far worse in the past” Lexa assured in a calm tone. Her expression was still guarded, but she enjoyed the caring Clarke was bestowing on her right now.

“I know” Clarke nodded with a solemn expression and her blue eyes showed raw sadness for a moment “But that doesn’t make it better, Lexa. Remember, life is about more than just surviving?”

Lexa’s green eyes widened a fraction before a smile was tugging at the corners of her lips “Maybe it indeed is” she agreed with a heavy tone. Her heart clenched again painfully. “We have left Marie behind…” her voice was laced so heavily with guilt and regret as it trailed off that Clarke increased the pressure on the wound slightly.

“You will be getting her back” Clarke assured her in a tone carrying a conviction she did not feel fully. For sure, she knew that the general and commander would not rest before they either had the child back or their fights were over. But this new enemy was scaring her and she knew that this thing was also putting large parts of Lexa’s identity in jeopardy.

She did not know too much about the flame, but she had heard a few things being spoken about between Marie and Lexa. And she had also casually asked a few of the inhabitants of Polis about it.

Apparently, there was no rightful commander without the flame. How would the grounders take it, if it was revealed that the basis of their culture actually was most likely a piece of technology, far beyond even her own understanding.

She did not know if Lexa would allow her to be around when they managed to defeat the city of light. Without much further thought, Clarke wound her free arm around the commander’s form, giving her a one-armed hug, while she kept her other hand on the other woman’s arm to staunch the bleeding.

Lexa was rigid within the hug for a few seconds, blinking her eyes in utter surprise.

Clarke felt her stomach coil with dread at Lexa’s tenseness and she felt the rejection more painfully than any physical assault could ever be.

While she wanted to pull away, she had felt her blue eyes mist over with a sheen of unshed tears. She blinked them away forcefully and had just wanted to let go, when Lexa finally seemed to breath out deeply and Clarke felt the commander’s frame relax against her.

When Clarke pulled away a few moments later, her features were torn between a smile and her eyes still showed her unshed tears.

Lexa’s green eyes bore deeply into Clarke and her voice was barely above a whisper as she husked “I have missed you, Clarke” in a regretful tone.

Clarke did not get the chance to reply something though as someone cleared their throat behind them rather loudly and Clarke practically jumped away from the commander, only to be greeted by Anya’s knowing smirk.

Anya and Lexa shortly bandied a gaze, communicating without any words that the general would back up her former second if needed.

Clarke furrowed her brow at the general, but gladly accepted the water canteen the Trikru woman was offering to her. She was still unnerved by the other woman’s ability to just sneak up on her like that and she was certain that no matter how much training they might bestow on her in the future, she would just never be this observant.

“We might have come up with a solution to try and defeat the city of light” Raven and Sinclair had stepped up to them.

Clarke frown slightly when Lexa immediately slipped her shirt back on, stepping away from the blonde and not minding her injured arm at all.

The commander and general both seemed curious to hear what Raven had to say.

“It is obvious without saying that you are somehow the key to all of it” Raven pointed right at Lexa.

The commander’s expression was cautious as she slightly inclined her head in agreement, whole poise rigid otherwise. Anya on the other hand was broadcasting a barely veiled suspicious expression, she had not liked at all how Skykru was talking about the flame and she already feared what these developments may mean for Lexa in the future.

“I think that it is most likely that we actually need to get into the city of light” Raven continued and Clarke felt her stomach sour in anticipation. Once Sinclair cleared his throat behind Raven, the mechanic continued with a slight roll of her dark eyes “We have not agreed on this part as of yet” she shot Sinclair an unamused glance at that “but I think that the commander needs to swallow one of the keys”.

Clarke felt her heartbeat pick up in fright and she immediately shook her head, stepping physically closer to Lexa again.

Anya’s reaction was even more pronounced and the general’s expression had turned from suspicious to alarmed and angered in the flash of an eye “Absolutely not” she thundered.

“Raven, you really cannot mean that…” Clarke had turned to Raven and was looking at her with wide eyes.

“And why not?” Bellamy chimed in “She could do something useful for once...” his tone had been laced with long past grievances not yet forgotten or forgiven.

Anya outright growled at the dark-haired young man in loud protest.  

Kane was lowly admonishing Bellamy for his cheek, pulling at his arm to turn him away from the grounder leader.

Lexa had not said anything yet in reaction and her expression was contemplative. “I will discuss with the former commander” she proclaimed in a decisive tone and turned away from the group, not minding Clarke trying to follow her or Anya practically seething.

Chapter 37: Chapter 281

Chapter Text

Chapter 281

„Lexa…“ Clarke began, stepping behind the commander’s retreating form deeper into the cave, intent on convincing the other young woman that Raven’s idea seemed extremely dangerous.

They had no real idea yet as to how the keys were working. They had seen whole groups of people act as if they were controlled by something outside of them, something invisible connecting all of them magically, almost as if they shared some kind of neuronal connection all of a sudden. They had seen that the Skykru who had swallowed the keys were not held back by physical reactions such as pain, tiredness or hunger.

They all knew that whatever this city of light really was, it needed to be destroyed before it could spread through the lands of the coalition. But letting Lexa swallow such a key seemed like a too high risk to Clarke. She could not assess if she was blinded by her personal feelings for the woman or if it was mostly logic telling her that the leader of the grounders taking this was the worst idea ever.

Lexa turned around suddenly, stopping in her motion and immediately folding her hands behind her back.

Clarke immediately recognized the commander’s persona being firmly in place within the brunette leader and she knew that she had lost the discussion before she could have started it.

She sighed and let her shoulders drop in defeat “I cannot bear the thought of losing you, Lexa” she articulated softly, tone so low no one beside the commander would have been able to catch the uttered words between them.

Lexa’s green eyes softened visibly, but her resolve stayed strong “Neither can we lose our daughter” she repeated decisively “I am the commander, Clarke” she continued and her eyes hardened again “if we cannot defeat this threat, then there will be no commander any longer”.

On a personal level Lexa would stop at nothing to rescue Marie and get their sweet daughter back. They had lost her before and she shuddered to imagine what this new ordeal could do to Marie’s already scarred soul.

But as the leader of her people, she knew that the city of light was a threat they had never faced before. There would be no need for a leader any longer if her people swallowed the key and they would all be controlled by whatever the city of light was.

She knew open fights, hard wars and long sieges. She had been raised for those from as young as she was able to walk. She knew all there was to know about strategy and politics.

In the beginning of her reign, she had consulted the previous commanders’ spirits contained very often, heeding their advice. As she had grown into her position, she had consulted them less and less often.

The last time that she had consulted them actively was upon Marie’s abduction and the delivery of her blonde braids interwoven with the red bands. She had not been greeted with too much support, just as expected. The former commanders mostly regarded her as weak. They had seen more than any of the ambassadors, privy to her private memories.

None of them had understood or supported how she chose to take the young blonde child as her second. Elevating her far beyond what was reasonable in their eyes and to make matters worse, to take a lover from the same clan.

She had seen most of the other commanders’ reign and how they finally died, a lot of the times at the hand of their own people. The only one of who she did not have a lot of memories was the very first commander.

Clarke observed how the brunette leader sat down cross-legged on the hard ground and her green eyes closed immediately. She watched how the commander took a few deep breaths and her features cleared of every little hint of residual emotions as the meditation got deeper and deeper.

Thus far Clarke had mostly only seen Lexa being “contacted” by the former commanders in her nightmares, being reminded of their brutal deaths at the hand of their own people. Very rarely she had observed the brunette mediate with the intent to consult the former commanders. She had asked Lexa about it at one point and the brunette had only answered that she needed to keep her mind sharpened to the skill of meditation in case she needed the previous commanders urgently.

There was no way of telling if Lexa’s attempt to consult the previous commanders was actually successful or not.

Clarke remained standing in front of Lexa, looking down on the brunette in mute observation, but the commander’s features showed no change over time.

“This can go on for a while” Anya suddenly appeared beside her and her features were alarmed.

Clarke let her gaze leave Lexa’s almost peaceful features for now and looked over the general’s form probingly. She frowned when she noticed the older woman cracking the knuckles of her right hand and her gaze immediately narrowed down on the fresh gazes on the tanned skin.

She looked over to the group of Skykru standing closer to the entrance of the cave and Markus Kane was visibly inspecting a fresh laceration on one of his cheeks, which already seemed to swell.

“The boy still means trouble” Anya said in a harsh tone as her brown eyes had followed Clarke’s gaze “And I thought you’d be the one with the thickest skull I ever had to cross paths with”.

Clarke looked back at the general and although she did not wish to, the corners of her lips tugged up into the resemblance of a smile. She did not condone violence, but she knew that Bellamy had been more than insolent. She wondered if an ambassador in the capitol would’ve lost his tongue for such words against the commander or if the punishment might have even been harsher than that.

She shook her head slightly and regret flitted over her features. She thought that she had adapted well to the grounder culture, but it was obvious not everyone had.

“You are clearly against Lexa doing this” she changed the topic, knowing that it was pointless to discuss the matter with her people now. Clarke knew that for most of them things had changed for the better, but who knew how it would continue now that this new threat had been brought back by one of her own people again.

Anya inclined her head and her teeth ground together visibly “If this fails, then the coalition will fall. You are planning to hand over the might of the commander just like this. If the commander orders the clans to join this city of light, only very few will not. The war will have been lost, before it ever began”.

Clarke was the one to nod in agreement now. She had thought about this as well, but if Raven’s theory was correct, then Lexa was the only person able to do this. The problem was that Raven had nothing more than a theory. Could they really place all of their fates and Lexa’s life on this?

The other question was though what they were able to do instead.

“But what else can we do?” Clarke voiced her question in a regretful tone. It opposed her to think of the possibility of “sacrificing” Lexa in such a way, but she could not come up without anything else.

The general’s expression turned thoughtful “We need to figure out how to get Marie first”.

Clarke furrowed her brows. She could understand that the general and commander respectively both wanted their daughter back as soon as possible, but if the girl had taken the key as Bellamy had claimed, then saving her did not sound like a viable option either. Why there ought to be a sequence of actions was not clear to her either.

“I fully understand that you both want Marie back” Clarke formulated her thoughts carefully, she knew that Marie was a touchy subject for both grounder women “but it seems more obvious that Marie would return on her own once the city of light and thus the influence on your daughter dies”.

Anya seemed to contemplate her words for a few silent moments, before she inclined her head in obviously begrudging agreement “I can take one of these keys before Lexa to see if it’s safe”.

Clarke opened her mouth in the very same moment as Lexa opened her eyes again and the commander’s voice was thunder and power as she interrupted them “You shall not! And that is an order, general!”.

Lexa had gotten to her feet in one fluid motion. Although the general was taller than the commander and dressed in armour while Lexa was wearing only tightfitting dark pants and a dark shirt, the commander seemed to overpower the older woman effortlessly as she literally radiated utmost power.

Clarke watched the exchange in rapt fascination. Lexa’s green eyes were blazing angrily and the brunette’s eyes only lost a slight spark of her anger once the general lowered her head in mute acknowledgement of her order.

“Lexa” Anya started to speak and her voice was obviously carefully measured and concealed the frustration the older woman must have been feeling “if this fails…”.

“Enough!” Lexa all but barked at her former mentor and her voice had infused with steel. She strode passed Clarke and Anya likewise, obviously aiming to join the rest of the Skykru members who had all turned in their direction at the raised voices.

“Raven kom Skykru” Lexa addressed the dark-haired younger woman directly “You are to retrieve one of these keys immediately. The first commander will guide me”.

Raven was looking at the commander weirdly and tons of questions were passing through her dark eyes, but she seemed to sense that now was not the time to utter them.

Clarke and Anya had followed Lexa to the rest of the group and Anya offered to accompany the Skykru mechanic. Clarke contemplated offering the same, but she wanted to stay and keep Lexa company instead.

Anya lightly placed a hand on one of the commander’s shoulders, urging her away from the rest of the group and throwing over her shoulder “We will depart in a moment”.

Lexa ground her teeth together, she had hoped that the general would leave without a further argument.

“Lexa, I do not speak as your general right now” the older woman opened the argument, hoping that she could speak to Lexa and not her leader.

Lexa breathed out deeply, letting her body relax somewhat of the tension which had remained behind. “I understand your doubt, Anya” she reassured her former mentor “Bekka Pramheda has spoken to me though.”

Anya furrowed her brows and the words of discontent which had been at the very tip of her tongue died down. She did not like the way Lexa’s green eyes showed the younger woman’s internal trouble. Whatever the first commander had told her, had obviously not all been good for them. “You have trust that this is the only possible way, Lexa?” she asked instead in a much softer tone than before and she let her personal worry for the brunette show within her expression openly.

Lexa nodded her head in agreement immediately and her own expression showed her already made decision “Now is not the time to discuss what I have seen though” she added as an explanation.

Anya ground her teeth together slightly, but she took her leader’s words without open objection now. She turned around to go back to Raven and start their way back into Arkadia, but Lexa reached out to her and held her back with a mere touch to her elbow.

“Try to bring Marie back with you” the commander almost pleaded.

Anya gave a curt nod of mute agreement and stepped away finally.

~ ~ ~

“Ready?” she asked the dark-haired mechanic girl in a steely tone. Neither of them knew what they would be greeted with in Arkadia. She was used to battles and mission to be based on planning and details from scouts, but now they knew nothing. It was setting her on edge more than she liked to admit even to herself.

Raven on the other hand seemed to have little concern that their mission may be set up for failure. “Of course, grounder princess” she shot back with sass deep in her tone.

Anya arched a brow at the younger woman and echoed “Grounder princess?”

“An insider” Raven retorted with a pointed look at Bellamy, probably telling the dark-haired man not to do anything stupid while they were gone.

“You are aware that I am a general and not a princess?” Anya probed with her expression still drawn.

Raven rolled her eyes “Of course” and the sass had dropped from her tone “You are no fun”.

“I fail to spot this at the right time for jokes” Anya replied tersely as they left the cave and she quickly began to guide the fastest way back to Arkadia.

“Really no fun at all” the dark-haired woman muttered under her breath, but still loud enough that Anya caught every word effortlessly.

“Sssh!” she warned the younger woman and let her brown eyes travel around the shadows dancing around them. Anya did not trust the fact that no one had followed them by now. If some of their own scouts had also swallowed these keys to the city of light, there would be no save places to hide any longer.

It did not take them long to get back to Arkadia and the atmosphere around the camp was only adding to Anya’s discomfort.

Chapter 38: Chapter 282

Chapter Text

Chapter 282

“They are leaving Arkadia” the general relayed to the Skykru mechanic in a worried tone. It did not bode well with her that the people she had seen leaving were doing so with intent. She could not fathom though what they may be planning to do. She highly doubted that questioning them would yield to anything.

This new threat was obviously spreading way faster than any of them could have ever imagined. Even if she would be in the company of the commander’s personal army now, she highly doubted it would do much good to try and contain them in this camp.

“Where are they going?” Raven questioned with a raised brow.

“It was not as if I could just hold up one of them and ask nicely” Anya retorted with deep sarcasm in her tone.

Raven rolled her eyes in rising annoyance “I guess it is not going to get any clearer then. Hopefully they left one of their keys behind”.

Anya nodded in agreement. If their plan depended on one of these things, it would fail already if there was no key to be found. They had not discussed an alternate plan of action yet.

They entered Arkadia on the same route as they had left it earlier that day. Not a single patrol seemed to be active on the perimeter and no one intercepted their way.

They climbed up a ladder on the back of the carcass of the Ark. From the roof the line of people still fanning out of Arkadia was clear even in the darkness. Goosebumps rose on Anya’s arms. Skykru had never been associated with silence in Anya’s mind. The way they moved now was distinctly different and put her on edge.

Raven felt her breath being stuck in her throat when she stepped up to Anya and looked down. She immediately could spot Jaha and Abby in front of the main entrance of the Ark.

She crept closer to them, trying not to make any sound. They were speaking with each other, but she was too far away to hear them.

Anya was busy pushing away the hatch again through which they had escaped earlier. The room underneath her was still alight and there was chaos everywhere on the floor. When she noticed that the Skykru mechanic had moved to the edge of the roof, the girl had already been out of her reach.

Muttering a curse under her breath, she slowly etched closer to where the dark-haired girl was being hunched over the edge of the Ark. Anya did not hold too much trust for the metal surface they were standing on. She had spotted Jaha and Abby as well by now though and was curious when she heard them talking.

“… the commander has not come back to get the girl” it was Abby’s voice which was carried up to them lowly.

Anya ground her teeth together in rising anger. It was clear that they were speaking about Marie. So far, she had not spotted the child among those leaving the Ark, none of the figures had the right size or the right blond hue of hair. Was their daughter somewhere in the metal contraption?

“They will come for her” Jaha’s voice answered void of any emotion “and when they do, we will know where the commander is hiding…”.

Anya frowned suspiciously. It sounded almost as if they were anticipating for Marie to lead them to Lexa. She was certain the child would never do such a thing willingly.

There was a short pause, and both turned to look at the same point “… we will find the second code for you. There was nothing in the database of the Ark”.

Anya was internally debating on jumping down on the two Skykru and forcing them to tell her where Marie was. But they had seen that the people under the influence of the key did not respond to pain, so how should she force them? If it had been only one person, she was positive to be able to knock them unconscious before this weird power would be notified, but she highly doubted this tactic would be successful when faced with two people under the influence of the key. She balled her hands into fists from internal frustration.

Raven shook her head at the general and placed one hand on the other woman’s knees as they were crouched next to each other.

They may not be able to torture people who had taken the key, but neither of them was immune to physical pain. If they were noticed now Raven had no idea what Abby or Jaha would do to them. As Jaha had been the one to start distributing the keys, she assumed it reasonable for him to have ingested the key willingly. Abby had been against them though and the mechanic had no idea either what could have convinced or rather forced her to have given in. She also had the pressing suspicion that Marie being under the control of the AI would force the general into compliance. Raven may not have any love for the Trikru woman, but she knew she’d stood no chance on her own.

Just at that moment, Abby and Jaha started moving with ghostly union. It took them only a few moments before they were out of their sight, having vanished into the carcass of the Ark. Their footsteps echoed through the halls for a while before complete silence settled around them.

Anya doubted that they had been spotted. Thankfully, Raven had kept exceptionally still and for once had kept her mouth shut. The general wondered if there still may be hope for the Skykru mechanic after all. She turned away from the edge of the roof and back to the hatch she had already opened. Carefully, she leaned forward and peered into the room, listening intently if she could hear any footsteps in the halls.

Once she was convinced no one was moving through the halls directly in front of the room beneath her, Anya descended from the hatch, making as little sounds as possible. She turned around and helped Raven down as well. She hissed under her breath in irritation when the mechanic promptly caused a crunching sound on a shard on the ground with one of her boots. Her fingers curled forcefully around the brunette’s arms, holding on for a moment in case she needed to quickly help her escape. They seemed to have been lucky for once though and Raven’s carelessness didn’t cause any immediate reaction.

Raven had a sheepish expression on her face and although the general’s grip was bordering on being painful, she did not try to pull away. Her dark eyes already traveled around the room. Their flight earlier had caused quite the chaos and she felt her hopes of finding an intact key slowly dwindling away. She had been given a few of the keys to experiment with a while ago, but she could already see the ones she had been working on lying smashed on the ground.

The general seemed to have noticed the broken pieces as well by now. “Where else could we find one of them?” the Triku woman was already trying to come up with an alternative plan.

Raven pulled a face. “There may be a few in the medical bay. I know Abby had confiscated some a while ago and stored them in of the locked cupboards.” These brought up two problems though. One: she didn’t know if the keys may have been relocated now that Abby was also under the influence of the AI. Two: The key to the locked cupboard would most likely be with Abby at this moment.

With her brows furrowed Anya walked over towards the door to the corridor. The electric light was still on, and it was dead silent in the halls. If one of the Ark’s inhabitants who had taken a key was within earshot Anya knew they wouldn’t stand a chance to reach their medical bay undetected. She considered leaving Raven alone on the roof of the Ark. It was unlikely the mechanic would be detected there. But she wasn’t familiar enough with the outline of the Ark to find her way there alone. If she had time to search for it, she may succeed, but she didn’t count on this.

Raven looked more closely around the room, hoping that there may be at least one key still intact to be found somewhere. Unfortunately, her search was futile. She highly doubted that trying to piece one key back together would yield anything.

“Your medical bay seems to be the only option then,” Anya remarked, having watched Raven’s unsuccessful attempts from the corner of her eye.

Raven agreed with a grimace. Both seemed to silently agree that going there wasn’t desirable. If they encountered people under the influence of the key, there would be next to no options to hide or flee in the narrow metal halls. Still, there seemed to be no other option either. They needed such a key if her theory was correct. She had no idea what Lexa had meant by saying that the first commander would guide her, and neither did she plan on asking for an explanation.

So, Anya proceeded to the mechanic into the empty halls a few moments later, keeping her ears perked for any signs of getting company. A dagger was in one of her hands already just in case. She had no qualms about eliminating whoever they might encounter.

Surprisingly, they did not cross paths with anyone on their way. Raven still felt beads of sweat gathering on her neck from the tension, as they finally entered the medical bay.

Anya frowned when her eyes scanned over the sterile room. Only one bed was occupied, and it took her only a second to realize it was indeed her daughter lying in the bed. Her heart jumped with relief at seeing the child again.

Raven barely managed to reach out and stop the general in her fast stride to reach the bed. They had no idea if Marie was sleeping or if she would wake up as soon as Anya touched her or said anything. Worry clouded her features as the general whirled around with a snarl on hers. As both stayed silent though it was clear they agreed that waking Marie up now may be potentially dangerous.

Anya still frowned deeply when she turned her glare away from Raven and looked back towards the bed. Marie did not seem to notice their entrance. The girl was lying there peacefully as far as she could tell from the distance. She could not see yet if she was breathing, but the conversation between Abby and Jaha they had just listened to a little while ago did not make her believe that Marie could be seriously injured or dead. They obviously thought to needed Marie to lure Lexa toward them.

If one thing was certain for Anya, it was the fact that she would not step foot out of the Ark again without Marie. Nothing would convince her to leave her daughter behind, and neither would she believe that Lexa would agree to this either. They both wanted their child back. That Marie would be under the influence of the key would be worrisome though. Somehow the people under the influence of the key seemed to be connected. She did not understand it, Raven seemed to have a slightly better perception of what might be going on.

So, if Marie would see Lexa, whatever thing connected these people now, would also know the location of the commander.

“Can we sedate her?” the general asked under her breath, not turning her eyes from the hopefully sleeping girl.

Raven huffed lightly. She had never received any kind of medical education. Abby had offered her some sedation in the past before her leg had been healed. She might be able to recognize the word on the label again if she came across it, but she was not entirely certain. If only Clarke had accompanied them, the blonde would know for sure.

As silently as possible, Raven crept through the medical bay. She trusted Anya to alert her in case Marie showed any signs of reacting to them. The general’s gaze was practically glued to the bed now although the Trikru woman had not dared to move closer just yet. A small part of her mind could sympathize with her, these constant frights with Marie would surely take a toll on anyone, it seemed as if the kid couldn’t really take a break for long.

Their second problem seemed to have been cracked already. All the cupboards in the medical bay stood wide open. Raven felt her heart beat a little faster at that realization, it was possible for them to have been cleared out.

Carefully, she looked through the opened cupboards. There was a variety of medical equipment including pills and injection vials left behind, but all seemed to be in disarray as if they had been knocked around their usual storage by careless hands.

Raven let her eyes scan over the injection vials, but her haste turned frantic a few moments later. All the names sounded awfully familiar. She spotted an empty bag on one of the cupboards and without any further ado, she just tossed everything without order into it. Clarke would know easily what they should use.

Anya’s eyes widened at the noise Raven was making. She did not need the mechanic to explain to her that they did not have the means to sedate Marie now. As she also had no idea what all the medical things were Raven had just tossed into the bad, she could not make any suggestion either. With her luck, she would probably choose something that would harm their daughter by accident.

Marie twitched on the bed and her eyelids fluttered open a mere second later. She sat up as straight as a pole in one fluid motion and her eyes had a weirdly empty expression within their depths as the girl looked around the room. Her voice sounded almost mechanical as she said, “The commander isn’t here.”

“Marie” Anya tried to address her daughter, hoping for at least some flicker of recognition on the child’s features, but they stayed frustratingly blank. It was different than after her torturous months with Queen Nia. Back then, the child had looked at them suspiciously first and fearful later, before she had regained her memory. Now, there seemed to be nothing at all.

“Yes, she will come” Marie retorted mechanically, looking at another point in the room altogether.

Footsteps lightly echoed through the halls, coming closer to them with each passing second.

“We need to leave” Anya urged, stepping closer to the bed. If she had to forcefully drag Marie with her, she would, but she wouldn’t leave without her.

Raven’s gaze flickered between the empty cupboards – her search for a key had once again been futile – Marie and the hallway. Seeing the child act so out of character was weird. It hadn’t been long ago that she had seen the girl being affectionate with both, the commander and the general, and the child had never been particularly difficult to read as her emotions were mostly openly displayed on her young face.

“If we take Marie with us, they will all know where we go” she cautioned the general.

Anya merely nodded. She had concluded that herself already. “I am not leaving my daughter behind,” she said decisively.

“Your daughter is safe in the city of light” Marie herself answered.

Goosebumps rose on her neck, hearing the child talk about herself in the Third Person. Anya pressed her lips together firmly. No matter what she would try to say to Marie, it was obvious the child couldn’t answer. She just had to believe that their daughter was still in there somewhere. They had to get this key out of her again.

As the footsteps grew louder, Anya hesitated. She did not wish to physically hurt the child, but she obviously would need to be knocked out somehow.

Raven seemed to have smaller qualms about that. Without much further ado, the mechanic had walked up behind the bed and knocked a small metal tray over Marie’s head with a sickening thudding sound.

Instinctively the general jumped forward and caught the child’s lax body. She internally prayed that Marie’s skull had not taken any damage. They had never brought the girl back to have her skull scanned again. And although a large part of her wished to strangle the mechanic for what she had just done, she knew that there had been no alternative either.

She picked the girl up from the bed and arranged her smaller body within her arms so that she could carry her easily without being hindered in her own movement too much.

From the sounds getting closer, they barely had a few seconds now to make their exit. Raven already hastened towards the door. Luck seemed to be on their side for once as the footsteps came from the opposite direction of where they wanted to go now.

They still ran all the way back to the room and Anya climbed up onto the roof with Marie securely in her arms, just a moment after the mechanic. She closed the hatch behind them quickly. There was obviously a search going the Ark for them.

Both caught their breath for a few moments in silence. Although Anya felt relieved that they had stumbled upon Marie, she hated the feeling of the child’s lax body within her arms. She could also only hope that Raven might be able to figure out a way to get this key out of the child again. Otherwise, they may have brought back Marie’s body, it seemed to be a mere shell right now, populated by something she neither liked nor understood.

They also had failed to locate any of these keys. Where would they procure such a thing now?

Chapter 39: Chapter 283

Chapter Text

Chapter 283

 

“Marie?” Maura’s happy tone called her attention as she had been staring lost in her thoughts during their current class. Now that she tried to focus, she couldn’t even pinpoint which subject they were visiting right now.

Something was entirely wrong about all of this, but Marie could not figure out what felt so off. No matter how much she tried to remember her past beyond having been collected by Maura to attend school, she couldn’t. Everything was a blur. A few pictures had come to her mind. Snippets really. But she couldn’t actively remember the memories these snippets belonged to. It was as if she was looking at snapshots of the life of a stranger.

She tried to force a smile onto her features and looked at her friend. She knew for certain that they were friends. She did remember a few snippets specifically with Maura, but something was missing from those memories as well, almost as if things had been cut from them somehow.

“What got you so quiet?” the girl asked her with a tease in her tone. Their lesson must have been concluded. The other children had started to get up from their chairs and mingled among themselves, their laughter soon coloured the atmosphere around them. Somehow Marie failed to connect to their joy though.

She shrugged her shoulders slightly, trying to divert the question without answering. A voice flashed through her mind as she made the gesture, telling her that shrugging her shoulders wasn’t a proper way to answer anything. Her smile froze as she blinked in confusion. She could not pinpoint this voice at all. It had an oddly familiar ring to it, but no matter how hard she tried to remember the scene and who the voice belonged to, her mind remained blank. A headache was starting to form behind the skull and Marie tried to massage her temples to ease the rising tension.

She shook her head at the suddenly worried expression on Maura’s features. “It is just a headache,” she said quickly and forced another smile onto her face.

Before Maura could retort anything, a woman suddenly appeared behind her. “Maura, please proceed to your next lesson. You will see Marie later” the woman said in a strict tone. The smile she wore on her features failed to reach her dark eyes.

As soon as Maura had begun walking again, Marie felt those dark eyes land on her heavily. She looked up at the unfamiliar woman with an innocent expression, slightly confused as to why she had sent away her friend or where she had even come from so suddenly. The woman hadn’t been their teacher for this lesson and Marie had not noticed any other adult present besides their teacher before.

“You have a headache, Marie?” the woman questioned her as she bent down, coming down to her level.

Marie nodded in agreement with a slight frown. Goosebumps had raised on the back of her neck. The vibe the woman was giving her was creepy and all she wanted was to stand up and run away. Although she had no clue where she would be able to run to.

“There is no escape, Marie” the woman continued, and the smile had vanished from her features. She looked at Marie now almost as if she was trying to dissect her with her piercing gaze.

Marie’s eyes widened and she blinked. She had not said anything. How was this woman able to know her thoughts like this?

“I have not made my introduction to you just yet, Marie” the woman seemed to answer her thoughts directly “I am A.L.I.E.”

Marie just continued to mutely stare at her in confusion. She had never met anyone who could read your thoughts, at least not as far as she could remember.

The woman’s expression turned kinder again “Stop worrying about your memories, Marie, you are safe in the City of Light now, that is all you need to know.”

Marie tilted her head a little sideways, scrutinizing the woman just as she was still doing. Something in the back of her mind told her that the woman was lying, about what, she did not know. But she did know that she couldn’t trust her.

“Continue with your day now, Marie” the woman commanded and although Marie had felt no desire to pack her school things and go to the next lesson, it was exactly what she did now. Her body seemed to be moving without her conscious decision to do so. She tried to stop her own body and regain control, but she couldn’t. The harder she tried, the stronger her headache finally go. When she closed her eyes to ease the pain, her mind went blank.

~ ~ ~

Clarke watched Raven and Anya leaving with mixed feelings. She hated sitting idle while others were in action. She had understood how dire their situation was and she was second-guessing their decision. Nothing had happened yet, and she internally mused about the possibility of swaying Lexa’s mind. Could they really risk the commander taking one such key as well? The majority of Skykru had obviously already fallen prey to these weird keys. She had lived long enough among the Grounders to know that almost no one would question Lexa’s orders if she were to distribute these keys.

“Have you forgotten the preparation for the war against the Mountain?” Lexa asked, disturbing Clarke’s internal musing. The commander had stepped closer to the blonde woman without her notice and had been watching her for a while now. The gears turning within her mind nonstop might as well have been screaming at her. She knew the Mountain was still a sore subject between them and she doubted Clarke would ever truly forgive her for her decision.

Back then Clarke had also obsessed over their plans, wondering about the thousand possibilities they might fail and how to counteract these events. In the past, Lexa had already tried to impart on Clarke how senseless this overthinking was. The first commander, Becca, had indeed spoken to her. The woman knew immediately what they were encountering now, although she did not answer any of the questions Lexa had for her, she promised her to help. She could only trust now that Becca had her reasons for withholding information in such a fashion.

Clarke turned her gaze from the entrance to the cave back at Lexa. The commander’s green-eyed gaze still rested on her intensely. She huffed with frustration constricting her chest almost painfully. “If you do take one of these keys to get into the City of Light and the first commander will not be able to help you sufficiently, our plan will fail.”

“I have trust in Becca Pramheda” Lexa retorted with utter conviction. She had been raised with this knowledge and believe, it was ingrained so deeply in her, that she never even thought about questioning it. She could not allow herself to start doubting this knowledge now.

Clarke frowned with an objection burning on the tip of her tongue. She decided to take a deep breath instead. While she had not grown up with any kind of deeper belief and how could she with her mother being a doctor and her father an engineer, she had been taught to live by the facts she could see and prove. She knew though how different Lexa’s upbringing had been. Although she had not been privy to any lessons of the conclave which dealt with the commander’s spirit, she assumed it fair to compare these with a kind of religion. She would prefer to base their plans on knowledge and facts, but it seemed as if they had no other options at the current time.

She in fact did remember the moment Lexa had been alluding to earlier very clearly. A slight smile pulled at her lips as she let the memory rewind within her mind. “I know that second-guessing our plans won’t help” she agreed, letting her doubts drop for now.

Lexa inclined her head in mute acknowledgement and silence settled between them. Lexa’s gaze turned to the small group of Skykru still standing together at the entrance of the cave. If they had been alone in the cave, she may have continued a conversation with Clarke or even thought about initiating some physical contact with the blonde, but the company of Bellamy made her weary. The young man was extremely vocal about his continued dislike of her and only Clarke’s liking of him kept him alive. No ambassador would’ve dared to utter words about her as he had and walked out alive. His apparent stubbornness at recognizing and respecting her position in the society Skykru had fallen into angered Lexa immensely. She had dealt with disrespect in the past, but he was blowing all scales.

An alarmed shriek went through the small group a moment later. Lexa immediately pulled out one of her daggers, assuming that they might have been found at last, as she stepped closer to the entrance of the cave. Bellamy had also pulled a gun out from under his jacket. Lexa eyed the foreign weapon with distaste for a moment before she looked outside to look for what may have startled them.

 She let her dagger sink with a slight shake of her head and commanded Bellamy sharply to lower his gun as well. It turned out that Risha had found them, and the wolf was slowly nearing the cave now. Lexa immediately recognized the animal’s fur colour, and she knew their daughter would be most cross with them if something happened to her beloved wolf. The animal had for some reason bolted from the Ark, refusing to enter, and vanished into the forest shortly after their arrival at Arkadia.

Risha stopped sniffing the ground and looked up just as Bellamy lowered his gun. The wolf immediately ran towards Lexa, finally recognizing her scent. Although the animal came to a halt at her feet, the wagging of its tail ceased once Risha couldn’t find Marie in the cave.

“She isn’t here,” Lexa said with a sad note to her down, reaching down and letting her fingers card through the animal’s fur softly for a moment. If Risha had a facial expression, she was sure the animal was just frowning up at her now.

“I didn’t know Risha accompanied you” Clarke commented, having followed the commander. Her voice sounded relieved as she had expected for a fight to break out. She bent down and let the wolf sniff her offered fingers for a moment before she petted the animal as well in greeting.

Lexa had straightened again, though Risha was visibly standing just next to one of the commander’s legs now. “The wolf had separated from us at the gates” she explained. Marie had been too distracted by all the changes and spotting Maura to have noticed her wolf running off, otherwise, the child would surely have asked them to go look for her. It was clear though that Risha wasn’t a pup anymore, the animal was fully grown and had its own will. It would most likely always find Marie again. Lexa wondered if the wolf may have somehow sensed the danger and strangeness in Arkadia and had fled because of it.

There didn’t seem to be any suspicious movement in the perimeter she could see outside of the cave. So, Anya and Raven were still on their way. They could only hope that they would return successfully. Lexa still retreated deeper into the cave just in case someone under the influence of the key would stumble upon the cave by chance and spot her. It had been obvious that these people wanted her, what the reason was, she could only wonder.

The commander finally sat down and leaned against one of the walls of the cave. Clarke of course had followed her again, sitting down next to her closely. Without Risha in between them, their legs would be touching now. The wolf did not seem to mind the closeness in the slightest.

“If you hadn’t been notified of the things happening in Arkadia, did you have any plans for the following weeks?” Clarke finally spoke into the easy silence between them.

Lexa frowned slightly. She recognized the other woman’s question for what it was though, a plea for a distraction. “Nothing had been decided as of yet” Lexa answered honestly, although there had been ideas she had discussed with Anya. Marie hadn’t settled back into the capitol and her role as their second as well as they had hoped. They had planned to start organizing a trip into the north and take up Roan’s invitation to visit Azgeda during peacetime. Anya had also proposed to take Marie deep back into Triku land, as the general had wanted the child to see the village where she had been born and grown up.

Clarke smiled openly as she listened to Lexa’s words with rapt attention, forgetting their dire situation for the moment. “I am sure Marie will be delighted” she commented, and her expression didn’t show how her inner doubt wondered when or if the blonde child would return to the commander.

“Someone is moving in the direction of the cave!” the shout interrupted their communication suddenly. Lexa was on her feet already, before the words had fully registered within Clarke’s mind. Sinclair had noticed the movement apparently. Bellamy stood with his gun drawn at the entrance of the cave once again.

Lexa told him to lower his weapon harshly. Risha was hurrying in the direction of the movement. The wolf had better senses than any of them could hope for, and the commander felt hope grow within her heart. Had Anya managed to bring back their daughter?

“You think it’s Anya and Raven?” Clarke checked with a slight frown. She would’ve assumed that the general would just suddenly materialise in front of the cave, not giving herself away with noticeable movement. She could still vividly remember how the fierce Trikru woman had pulled her through the forest during their flight from Mount Weather. She hoped that Raven would do a little better with the general’s criticism.

It took only a little while longer before Risha broke through the trees again. The wolf almost seemed to be dancing between the cave and the treeline closest to their location, wagging its tail.

Lexa gave up their cover fully and walked towards the wolf, to her the animal’s behaviour could indeed only mean that their daughter was being returned to them. Risha had never reacted this happily to Anya on her own and the animal hadn’t been expressive in its happiness during Marie’s long absence while she was being held by Azgeda.

She recognized immediately that her internal prayers had been answered as Anya was visibly carrying something or better someone. The general’s almost grim expression made the commander pause though, something must be wrong.

Fresh red blood was the first thing Lexa noticed on the child’s bright hair. Her frown deepened tenfold. “What happened?” she questioned with an urge laced within her tone. She knew all too well what had occurred the last time the child had hurt her head. For a frighting second Marie’s lifeless body on the bed in the medical bay of the Ark flashed in front of her eyes, as blood had poured from the child’s ears.

“We didn’t have anything to sedate her” Raven tried to justify what she had done. She did appear honestly worried about the commander’s reaction and etched physically closer to Clarke, casting worried glances to the leader of the grounders as she spoke.

Lexa’s expression turned into a furious mask, but it seemed as if the commander tried to hold her tongue for now or rather Clarke beat her to it.

“So, you knocked her over the head?! Are you crazy?!” Clarke screeched in horror, reaching out to see where the blood had come from and inspect the wound.

Anya adjusted her grip on the girl’s lax body, so her head fell forward and allowed Clarke better sight. Risha was prancing around her legs in utter excitement and the general had to be careful not to fall over her.

“The swelling doesn’t seem too bad, and it shouldn’t require stitches. She’ll surely have a bad headache once she wakes though. I don’t have anything here to take care of her wound, so it will need to wait for now” Clarke informed the general and commander. Anya internally thought that Marie would most definitely not have a headache at all once she regained consciousness, which was part of their major problem now.

Raven held up the bag she was carrying. “There might be something in here. I just packed things up blindly and I really hope there is something for sedation as well. She can’t wake up right now.”

“Did you get one of the keys?” Markus Kane asked almost tentatively. He had walked closer to them but had waited to speak up until now. His dark eyes were worried as he gazed at the unconscious girl being held by the general.

Anya shook her head and Raven chimed in. “There was none left, and we managed to get out just in time after she woke up.”

Clarke’s lips thinned and she sighed deeply. The commander only inclined her head once, her features were still tilting towards anger, but she was obviously keeping her emotions in check just fine.

“Where else could we locate one?” the blonde asked with a frown. She waved Anya over to follow her back more deeply into the cave and asked the general to place Marie on the ground, while she looked through the bag of medical supplies to see what Raven had packed blindly.

A slight smile illuminated her face when she spotted some disinfectant, as well as a sedative. She was a little worried about the dosage of the sedative though. She did not have prior experience with this kind of medication and the label only read the dosage for an adult, so, she would be forced to judge how much to administer to the girl. She would rather choose a lighter dose. She knew how easily she could overdose the girl while she was unconscious, and she couldn’t watch the immediate effects of the sedative.

Anya had sat down on the ground cross-legged, holding up their daughter’s body to make it easier for Clarke to take care of her head wound. “Staying here hardly will do any good” she muttered darkly.

The commander nodded solemnly. “You said the people of Skykru were leaving their camp under the control of this …” she hesitated for a moment and her expression showed how much she disliked her own next word, “… AI. They must be distributing these keys through the clans now. We should easily encounter them anywhere.”

Clarke filled a syringe with the sedative, holding it up towards the fire and making sure no bubbles were visible before she carefully administered the sedative. She knew that the dosage she had just used may not be enough to keep Marie under fully, but she’d rather take this risk than put her under too deeply. “Anywhere doesn’t sound like a plan” she commented just as she packed away the rest of the sedative. They would only be able to sedate Marie for a few days at most before they’d run out of sedatives altogether.

“We can’t know where they are planning to go. I’d say Polis is as good a bet as any” Anya said while she gently tried wiping the drying blood from Marie’s head with a cloth dampened with disinfectant. Risha was nudging Marie’s legs with her muzzle, trying to get the girl’s attention and the wolf backed away a moment later, tilting her head as if the animal was deep in thought. The wagging of Risha’s tail had ceased as the wolf laid down across Marie’s feet finally.

Lexa felt her heart grow heavy. She didn’t want to imagine how their capital might have already fallen under this invisible threat even before they made it back. Anya was right though. If they were searching for her and couldn’t find her in the woods or seeking knowledge about the commander, their capital was the most logical place. They must know that she would return there sooner or later. They could only hope now to intercept someone carrying a key outside of the crowded streets of Polis. They wouldn’t stand a chance fighting many people under this influence.

“We could return to Arkadia and look for a functioning Rover. It will be impossible to make a surprise entry anyway and it gives us a speed advantage at least” Raven suggested thoughtfully.

Chapter 40: Chapter 284 - The Path to Polis

Notes:

(See the end of the chapter for notes.)

Chapter Text

Chapter 284 – The Path to Polis

 

In the end they decided to stay in the cave during the night. The fact that the people under the influence of the keys apparently did not require rest, worried both, Lexa, and Anya, greatly. But there was no way of knowing, if these people now had an advantage moving through the dark as well. Lexa didn’t wish to find out before they managed to locate such a key.

With worry deeply etched into her young features Lexa watched like a hawk how Clarke carefully cleaned Marie’s headwound.

Clarke sighed, feeling the weight of the commander’s gaze watch her every move. She could imagine how frayed the brunette’s nerves must be. She highly doubted that the Trikru general would be faring any better.

“We cannot stay here for very long” Clarke broke the tense silence between them with a cautious tone.

Lexa raised a brow at her in silent question. Internally the commander wondered just what may have given Clarke the idea, that she indented to just keep hidden in this cave.

Once she had wound a bandage tightly around the child’s head Clarke stood up again. She knew that it was promising to be a long night.

Anya immediately took up Clarke’s vacant spot next to Marie. Risha only shortly looked up at the general with a huff, when the woman took one of Marie’s lax hands into her own.

“The bottle I’ve used to sedate her is the only one in the bag” Clarke lowly explained with the hint of a frown. She was dosing the child carefully, afraid of possibly giving her too much of the sedative. But even if she continued to use the sedative scarcely, they would run out of it soon.

Understanding flashed through Lexa’s green eyes. “How long can you keep her sedated?” she asked in a strained tone. Seeing their daughter lying on the ground, once again completely unresponsive was unnerving. Internally Lexa almost feared though how Marie would behave when she woke. She may not have understood everything Raven und Sinclair had discussed about how the keys was influencing those who took it. But it had been extremely apparent that something was deeply wrong with those under the influence.

“It’s a small bottle” Clarke said as her frown deepened. She inspected the contents against the light of the flames carefully, trying to remember just how full the bottle had been before. “I don’t think more than two or three days.”

The general’s brown eyes were alarmed at this information. “And there’s not more of the sedation liquid in your Ark?”

Clarke shook her head with a doubtful expression. It had appeared as if Raven had collected every bottle from a cupboard in the medical bay. Of course, she couldn’t rule out the possibility of there being more, but she doubted it was worth the risk trying to acquire another one.

“We will need to leave before first light” Lexa proclaimed with a nod towards her general.

Clarke turned around with a sad smile on her lips when Lexa carefully, green eyes full of unmasked sorrow, reached out a hand to Marie as well.

Instead, she joined Sinclair and Raven around the fire and watched with narrowed eyes how Markus seemed busy whispering to Bellamy intently. Clarke knew that she should probably try to find out what was bugging Bellamy so much, but in all honesty, she guessed that they had far bigger problems now than a weird grudge the boy was still holding on to stubbornly.

She watched with interest how Raven was tinkering on some weird looking contraption. The mechanic had obviously sneaked the thing from the Ark when she had accompanied Anya in her quest to retrieve Marie and find one of those keys. The general hadn’t mentioned Raven taking anything though, most likely the woman had been completely focused on her unconscious child.

“What is that?” Clarke asked curiously, squinting her eyes at the contraption.

An almost triumphant smile played around Raven’s mouth as she looked up at Clarke. “I had been working on this before” she started to explain, as she bent down towards her bag and retrieved another part. Clarke watched with a frown how she seemed to randomly break something apart and added this part to the contraption quickly. “I am not sure yet if it will actually work.”

Clarke’s curiosity was replaced with another frown. It was obvious Raven was excited about whatever she had pieced together, but she hated when the mechanic forgot to explain for non-geniuses what was going through her mind.

“Chill, princess” Raven laughed at her expression openly. She seemed to be trying to turn the thing on, but her excitement was dimmed visibly as nothing happened. She turned to Sinclair again, completely ignoring Clarke now. “I am missing a power source. What about…?”

Clarke grumbled under her breath, and she turned back to look at Lexa and Anya. Both Trikru women had sat down on each side of Marie, Risha still lying over the girl’s legs. She felt painfully reminded of Marie seemingly dying just before they had reached the Boat people. It was obvious both women were fearing for their daughter and Clarke could only imagine how that felt. Both women were skilled warriors, but it appeared as if that wouldn’t be of help now.

She sat down relatively close to the fire with a sigh, resigning herself to another uncomfortable and strained night.

~ ~ ~

Lexa felt her eyes almost burn; she hadn’t truly slept at all during the night. She hadn’t trusted the members of Skykru to keep them sufficiently guarded, neither had she wanted to miss any change in Marie’s condition. Sadly, there had been none.

The first beginnings of dawn were slowly becoming visible at the entrance of the cave and Lexa finally let go of the child’s hand, gently placing it down on her chest. If her chest weren’t rising and falling regularly, Lexa would’ve feared for the girl to have slipped away. She was far too still and although Marie’s nightmares had started to ease off again, the child usually still showed at least some residual frown during sleep.

Anya immediately started to stretch at the light movement next to her. The general hadn’t found any rest in the cave either. She watched with a sad expression how Risha stood as well, climbing higher towards Marie’s chest. The wolf nuzzled at Marie’s lax hands and the animal whimpered audibly when the girl didn’t show any reaction.

Clarke was the first to wake from Skykru, while Bellamy had indeed begrudgingly guarded the cave together with Markus.

“I can go and hunt something” Anya started to offer, but the commander shook her head in denial.

The leader had spent the long hours of the seemingly endless night thinking on how to proceed. She had tried to get counsel from the other commander’s as well. The first commander had indeed spoken to her, intoning that she needed to get a key. The reassurance that their daughter was safe in the city of light for now, hadn’t felt reassuring to Lexa at all.

She finally agreed to let Raven and the other Skykru for a Rover. She may not understand much of what they were facing, but she felt the urgency of the situation deep within her being. She doubted that moving Marie before they got a Rover made sense, so, Bellamy and Kane agreed to return to the Ark. Raven insisted on joying them, hopeful to spot a “power source”. Lexa had just nodded along, although she had no clue what the Skykru girl was going to look for.

Sinclair and Clarke stayed behind with them. The blonde healer took of the bandage around Marie’s head carefully, wanting to inspect the wound for a possible infection.

“What was Raven trying to build again?” Clarke asked the older man with a short glance over her shoulder.

“If it works, she’s actually much more of a genius than I thought” Sinclair mussed thoughtfully.

Clarke huffed under her breath at her question basically not having been answered at all. “I hadn’t asked for your opinion on it, but what is was?” she repeated in an annoyed tone. She carefully inspected the wound on the girl’s head. The swelling was obvious, but the wound thankfully didn’t look infected.

“It’s supposed to be a sensor for the key’s signal. It could allow us to spot those under the influence way ahead” Sinclair finally explained with a good-natured smile.

Lexa and Anya bandied a short glance. Such a device would allow them a great advantage and they’d take everything they could get as aid right now.

The return of the small Skykru group thankfully happened quickly, but as they returned silently, they also returned without a rover. Raven still seemed to be in high spirits and proudly showed them the device she had put together. Kane’s report on the completely deserted Ark was alarming to say the least.

Lexa wondered internally if this AI thing was of the impression that she had left the perimeter of the Ark already and she feared what this would mean for the rest of her people. She knew deep down that every second these people walked around with the keys, the AI would be distributed further.

That the device worked was apparent as an angrily blinking dot on the screen broadcasted their own, or rather Marie’s position.

Anya scooped up the unconscious child from the ground quickly. The few things they had, had already been packed after all. The wolf immediately fell in step close to her, probably intent on staying close to its human.

While Markus and Bellamy were trying to identify a way on one of the maps they had still gotten from the old world and had started to update, Lexa frowned. She knew these lands like the back of her hand without the need to any map and she knew Anya did so as well. Internally she wondered how well Marie already knew the woods which would bring them towards Polis. Clarke and Raven had both explained the danger of Marie waking up and recognizing her surroundings, thus, leading the AI directly to them.

Lexa shortly bandied a quiet look with Clarke. Both didn’t need words right now; they both felt the urgency of getting moving.

~ ~ ~

The forest mist of dawn still lingered around them as the group finally left the cave and started their trek mutely.

Anya tightened her arms around their daughter’s unresponsive body protectively. She wondered just how often they would continue to get into situations where they had to fear for the child’s survival. It was not just her survival she was worried over, but rather the intactness of her mind.

The woods they moved through were dense and they made much slower progress than Lexa had hoped. She knew that without the Skykru to slow them down, she could travel quicker with Anya on her own. But even she had to admit that they would most likely need Raven’s aid, even if that unnerved her as well.

She listened to Clarke and Raven talking with each other. She guessed the two women thought to be speaking lowly, but she could catch everything they were discussing easily.

“I still don’t understand how the key’s work” Clarke mussed thoughtfully, letting her gaze wander around the woods. Although in the back of her mind she knew, the two Trikru women would surely notice anything amiss far before either of them.

Raven seemed contemplative as well. “I regret not having more time with one of them, preferably with her blood as well.”

Lexa felt the hairs on the back of her neck stand involuntary at the implication and she had to bite her tongue to keep out of this discussion. The way Anya’s brown eyes flitted over to her together with the tight clench of the general’s yaw clearly showed the older woman’s unease at this line of discussion as well.

“It’s tech, Clarke” Raven said still deeply contemplative “Problem is, it’s old-world tech. Not something I have seen before.”

To know that the flame must somehow be connected to the keys was the most upsetting thing and Lexa had failed to receive satisfying answers from the first commander. She felt that there was more, but the woman hadn’t shared her knowledge for some reason.

Bellamy stepped closer to Clarke again and Lexa watched the gaze they bandied with a clench of her stomach. She remembered how the blonde leader had insisted on protecting Bellamy during the preparation of the war against the Mountain. Something was clearly between them, and Lexa wasn’t sure if she wanted to know the depth of their connection.

Her train of thought was rudely interrupted by Bellamy turning towards her. If he was trying to hide his feelings, he was doing a poor job at it. The distrust on his features couldn’t have been any clearer.

“If this … flame is a part of all this” he started darkly, tone dropping dangerously “How can we trust you?”

“Bellamy!” Clarke exclaimed loudly in protest and surprise flitted over her features briefly before she ground her teeth.

Anya glared daggers at the young man and only the fact that she was still carrying their daughter kept her from wringing his neck where he stood.

Lexa seemed rather unfaced. She briefly glanced at Marie, features softening for the flash of a second, before the hardness of the commander steeled her features. Her voice was strong and unwavering as she said “You do not need to trust me. You need to trust that I will do whatever it takes to protect her.”

“That’s not…” Bellamy began to argue, clearly not impressed with that answer, just as Raven called them to a stop suddenly.

Another dot had appeared on the screen she was holding. Clarke stepped closer to the mechanic while Anya handed Marie’s unconscious body over to Lexa’s waiting arms. “It’s not moving” the blonde stated her observation of the screen in a confused tone.

“It may be that someone with the key had been there and it’s just a trace” Raven mussed “If this thing is as sensitive as I hope, then it should pick up traces already.”

Lexa curtly inclined her head towards her general and adjusted her grip on their daughter, positioning the child in what she hoped to be a comfortable position. She wondered internally if Marie even had any perception of her surroundings right now.

Anya quickly vanished between the trees right in front of them, knowing the direction of the signal from just one short glance at the screen.

Lexa mutely glared at the back of Bellamy’s head. Markus was obviously trying to talk some sense into him, but the commander highly doubted he’d be successful. She wondered internally if telling the young man of her willingness to sacrifice her own life for their daughter’s would help his attitude.

“Any signs of her waking up?” Clarke asked softly. She knew Lexa well enough to spot the signs of tension in the commander and she also knew how lucky Bellamy was to still draw breath after such an open affront. She somehow doubted that the scene would’ve played out like it just did if they still were in the company of more of Lexa’s soldiers.

Lexa shook her head mutely, tightening her grip just the slightest bit around their daughter. What she would give for the child to be awake again though. She felt Risha press up to one of her legs as they waited.

She heard Anya’s return long before the others of the group, safe for Risha of course. The general appeared rather disturbed, and she carried a small backpack with her.

“You have on the keys there” she said in a strained tone as she almost threw the backpack into Raven’s arms. The mechanic barely managed to catch it without letting her contraption drop.

Lexa frowned in deepening worry. “What have you found?” she asked, switching back to her native tongue.

Anya quickly relayed that she had found what she could only describe as some sort of altar constructed crudely from stone. She knew for a fact that those things had not excited a few days ago. Worryingly, the symbol of the commander had been etched in the altar and the backpack stood with it.

Lexa felt her stomach clench painfully with worry once more.

Clarke calling her over to Raven pulled the commander from her spiraling thoughts once more. The blonde’s blue eyes looked at her with so intense feelings, that Lexa already braced herself for what the Skykru may have found in the backpack Anya had brought back.

“We think they’re trying to replace the flame, Lexa” Clarke said with deep regret within her tone while she held up the key Raven had pulled from the backpack, so that the commander could also look at it.

Lexa felt unable to breath for a moment at the implication of the blonde’s words and she had to concentrate on the small key to see it, while she was keenly aware of the weight of Marie’s body within her arms.

Something had been done with the key and it looked almost broken. Even though Lexa had no technical knowledge even she could spot that it had been tinkered with.

The mechanic immediately launched into an elaborate explanation as to what they were seeing, but Lexa barely caught a word against the sudden loud rushing in her ears.

She stumbled backwards blindly when Clarke tried to reach out to touch her.

“We need to get to Polis as soon as possible” Anya broke the tense silence a few moments later. She could see how shaken the commander was now. She did not know if it would be possible for these people with the keys to replace Lexa as commander, but she knew this had to be prevented at any cost.

~ ~ ~

They had continued their trek until dusk. Anya had taken over Marie’s body a long while ago and she didn’t try to argue with Lexa when the commander proclaimed to look for prey in their surroundings. She knew the younger woman just needed a few moments on her own. She even held back Clarke when the blonde visibly wanted to follow.

“What if she encounters one of those under the influence of the key?” Clarke had all but hissed at her in apparent anger.

“You still don’t give Lexa enough credit” Anya had answered calmly. She would not agree out loud that she would breathe easier again once Lexa returned.

The commander did reunite with them finally near a stream. They would need to cross the stream tomorrow, doing so now in darkness would be foolish.

They found a hunter’s shelter close to the stream and while Anya got a fire burning, Lexa skinned the two rabbits she had managed to locate.

From the corner of her eyes Lexa watched Risha pacing around Marie’s unconscious form restlessly. The wolf’s ears were twitching in anticipation.

Almost silently Anya joined her next to the fire and took up the other rabbit. The general’s expression was deeply troubled as she gazed over to Marie and her wolf. “If she wakes and doesn’t know us, I don’t know if I can bear it again.”

Lexa swallowed the lump in her throat forcefully. “We will bear it, if we have to” she answered as firmly as she could muster right now and she hated how she felt herself faltering already at the mere idea.

“I think it’s definitely time to give her another dose” Clarke proclaimed towards the commander, not knowing what she had just interrupted.

Lexa abandoned the rabbits she had been working on to watch Clarke administer another dose of the sedation. A part of her wished for nothing more than letting the child wake up again and although her heart clenched painfully as the needle once again pierced the child’s skin, she knew that they couldn’t risk that.

On the other site of the fire Raven und Sinclair were working on the key, trying to connect it through various pieces of tech. Anya honestly had no clue what the two were trying to achieve and what they were looking for. Even though the war against Azgeda and Marie’s fear had been difficult to bear, she would’ve preferred another war now. A spark gleamed from the key suddenly and Markus and Bellamy walked over to observe what Raven had done as well. Sinclair seemed to be frantically doing something before the spark already died down again.

“I need to get something into her” Clarke mussed with a frown. Marie had been unconscious under sedation for long hours already and although she had just forced some water down her throat a little while ago, the healer knew water would not keep the child alive for long.

Lexa inclined her head in agreement, and she once again crouched down next to Marie’s body and gently took one of her lax hands.

As if the contact to Lexa’s skin was doing something, Marie’s breathing pattern visibly changed.

Hope gleamed within the commander’s green eyes just as Marie’s grey eyes finally flutter open. Anya immediately abandoned the rabbits as well, hastening over to Lexa and their daughter.

The moment Marie looked into Lexa’s eyes, Risha let out a warning growl. The commander could only briefly wonder what had gotten into the animal’s mind before Marie opened her mouth and spoke in an eerily tone. “They are waiting for you, Commander”.

Lexa’s fingers tightened around Marie’s almost on instinct as she felt her own mouth go dry. The child may be awake, but there had been absolutely on recognition within her grey eyes. It only took another second before Marie’s eyes visibly rolled back and her body went slack again.

Notes:

Hello everyone, I know that I haven't posted in an extremely long time, but I re-read the story and I think I finally got out of the plot hole. So, I really hope to be able to write frequentely again. Please let me know, if there is anyone left still wanting to read this.

Chapter 41: Chapter 285 – Dreams of the City

Chapter Text

Chapter 285 – Dreams of the City

 

When Marie opened her eyes again, she was sitting at a desk. Somehow, she knew, that she was sitting in a classroom. It almost seemed as if her eyes needed a moment to focus on the other small desks surrounding her.

Marie noticed the almost reflecting surface of the desk she was sitting at. Her own reflection looked back at her, and she noted on a few dust particles being highlighted by bright rays of sun shining through the clean windows of the classroom.

Before she could begin to wonder more deeply how she came to here, she heard Maura suddenly laughing next to her. Marie turned over to her right side and there Maura was sitting at the very next desk.

Her friend’s features were bright as she questioned “You’re pretty dazed, huh?”

The hint of a frown settled on Marie’s features at the question, and she internally tried recalling what had happened before the class. The calm voice of the teacher registered in her mind slowly, somehow as if being delayed.

Although she sat at the desk in a relaxed position and noticed how comfy the chair felt beneath her, something felt off somehow. Marie could not pinpoint now what it was, but internally she felt tense, as if waiting for something. She did not know what she may be expecting to happen though.

Frown deepening slightly Marie tried focusing on the soft calm voice of the teacher. She blinked a few times in rising confusion. She could not understand his words. She saw his lips moving and somehow a voice registered in her mind, but the exact words were slurred.

Marie subconsciously balled her hands into fists on the desk and as she did so, she noted how utterly clean her fingers were. The skin on her fingers looked soft and perfect. She frowned down at her own fingers, as they were the hands of a stranger.

Something was setting her off and it was as if little alarm bells were ringing within her mind. It did not appear as if any of the other pupils were worried about anything. Marie felt the alure of just sitting back and enjoying this peaceful moment, but deep down she was just aware of the fact that she wasn’t where she was supposed to be. She couldn’t even name where she was supposed to be.

The teacher all of a sudden stood in front of her desk and now his words were understandable.

“Pain is weakness, child” the teacher said kindly, bending down and engulfing her smaller hands with his. Marie felt the unusual softness of his fingers as well. “There is nothing for you to fear here. Only perfection awaits you here, finally setting you free.”

Marie bit back a gasp when Maura, who had been looking at her with a bright smile, suddenly disappeared. Or rather it was, as if her friend’s face suddenly flickered. Maura’s young face was replaced by an older face of a woman. Deep brown hair framed the face and strong green eyes looked at her intently.

When Marie blinked, trying to shoo away the image, the face switched, and an even older woman looked at her. Hair now blonder than brown, but brown eyes regarded her instead.

As Maura seemed to flicker back into existence, Marie felt a sharp headache blooming through her skull. She stared at friend with an open mouth, trying to remember what faces she had just seen. Deep down she knew they had meaning to her, but it was lost now.

The teacher who had just held her hand did not appear put off by her lacking response and when Marie noticed that his hands were no longer touching her, the man was suddenly gone. Replaced a woman in a red dress instead.

The woman regarded her for a silent moment, face expressionless. When Marie remembered her name to be Alie and the headache seemed to lessen, Alie started to smile slightly. “You are adjusting well, Marie.”

~ ~ ~

Lexa and Anya both watched the proceedings in the hunter’s shelter worriedly. Raven and Clarke were doing something to Marie.

After the child had seemingly just collapsed out of nowhere again, Clarke had immediately started to record her vitals. Raven on the other hand was trying to get a “scan” of Marie’s neural response.

Anya had had to physically drag Risha a slight distance away from their daughter’s body. It was apparent the wolf was only trying to protect its human.

Internally Lexa wondered though if Risha was only protecting an empty shell. She would have never assumed to change her opinion like this. But whatever had just spoken to her a few minutes ago had not been Marie. If she thought back to how the child had been after her return from Azgeda, suffering from amnesia, the girl had been suspicious and angry. But now there seemed to be nothing. Anger, she could deal with. They could guide her through anger. They could deal with suspicion somehow. Soothing the child’s insecurities with time, patience, and love. Lexa wasn’t sure if they would be able to bear this new situation.

She picked up the tinkered with key, Raven had let lying around. Thoughtfully Lexa inspected the small thing. Hoping to find anything which may prove helpful. She felt helpless when it came to Marie now. She needed to do something.

“Anything?” Clarke asked the mechanic in a strained tone. The girl’s vitals appeared normal as far as she could tell. She could clearly feel her heart beating and her pulse was steady once again. She had counted it three times just to be sure. The girl’s reflexes were another thing though. The child was utterly unresponsive. Even shining light directly into her grey eyes had not shown any reaction. If Clarke hadn’t just seen her sitting up and speaking, she would consider Marie being braindead. She doubted the child truly was though. She guessed more that whatever this AI was, it seemed to have full control on Marie.

Clarke wasn’t sure, but she guessed that they may be able to awake Marie from this AI’s grasp. The problem was, she had no clue how to trigger this.

A spike appeared on the small device Raven still held, thin cables were connected to Marie’s head now.

Anya tightened her fingers in Risha’s fur when the wolf clearly wanted to leap forward. The animal’s ears were flicking forward and back as if it was sensing something they were unable to see.

“The spike shows that her brain isn’t dormant, it’s a clear neural response” Raven insisted in a decisive tone.

Lexa felt hope flare up within her mind once again. If their daughter wasn’t dead, they could still find a way to get her back. She bandied a worried glance with her general for a moment.

“She’s in there.” Raven added and finally removed the cables from Marie’s head again, pulling them from beneath the bandage still covering the child’s head. “Somewhere.”

“If we only knew how to communicate with” Clarke huffed in clear agitation. She could almost feel the unease and worry radiating off Lexa and Anya likewise. She didn’t think either Trikru women deserved this mental anguish, neither did Marie. She only had the small hope that the child may be completely unaware.

Clarke finally turned to Lexa “Did the first commander ever mention the City of Light?”.

The commander frowned at the healer in silence for a moment, handing back the small key to Raven who wanted to continue examining it.

Anya let go of Risha and the wolf immediately returned to Marie’s side.

The commander finally shook her head. “I tried asking her last night” the frustration with the situation was deeply engraved in her tone “Becca said that I wasn’t ready to understand.”

Raven looked up sharply from the key in her hand “Becca? The first commander was named Becca?”

Lexa turned her green eyes to the mechanic, narrowing down on her, before she gave a curt nod.

“Mmh …”, Raven was obviously thinking hard about something, and her gaze switched between the small key and the key for a few tense moments. “I remember reading old files during my training on the Ark. Files on Polaris.”

Lexa nodded once again “Marie already told us that the first commander most likely came from Polaris.”

“What if the first commander invented this and the flame likewise?” Rave proposed carefully. She was obviously aware of how precarious the subject was. “What if everything you’ve assumed about the Flame—about the spirits of past Commanders, about wisdom being passed down—what if it’s just a version of the City of Light? A controlled space. A filtered AI.“

Lexa blinked at the mechanic for a moment, feeling as if her world was tiling once again. Something told her, that Raven’s hypothesis was right. “You’re saying … I carry the same machine as well?” she ground out through clenched teeth, whole body tense.

Clarke shook her head quickly, firmly. “Not the same. But maybe born from the same origin. You still have your free will. That matters.”

Silence stretched between them, heavy with the implications neither wanted to say out loud. That the enemy they faced might already be inside Lexa. That Becca, the revered First Commander, might have left behind more than just hope—she might have left behind a time bomb.

Finally, Clarke reached out, resting a hand gently on Lexa’s forearm. “The difference is… they surrendered to it. You never did.” She tried to insist in a firm tone.

Lexa didn’t look away from the flames. But she didn’t pull her arm back either. “I won’t. For Marie’s sake… I won’t.”

A few meters away, Lexa could hear Markus and Anya quietly arguing. The general insisted they should keep moving, but Lexa, though restless to continue herself, couldn’t ignore the exhaustion carved into Raven’s and Sinclair’s faces as they hunched over the altered key.

When she glanced over to see Clarke nearly nodding off by the fire, Lexa raised a hand to silence Anya. Pushing on now would be foolish—they needed rest to face whatever lay ahead.

Markus and Bellamy volunteered to scout the perimeter, and Lexa accepted with a clipped nod, privately grateful for even a short reprieve from the younger man’s smoldering distrust.

Then Risha whined—a soft, almost questioning sound—as she curled protectively at Marie’s side. Lexa moved closer. The child’s face was so still, features devoid of tension or pain. Gently, Lexa bent down, resting her forehead against Marie’s. “You are stronger than this, little star” Lexa insisted in a breaking tone.

She felt Marie’s body stirring slightly next to her and watched how one of the child’s hands clenched into a fist.

Raven observed another spike on her device just then and Lexa prayed to whoever God there may be to let their daughter win this fight.

Clarke was once again wide awake as well. Both Skykru women agreed that Marie’s movements and rising neural activity would most likely mean that the child was fighting the AI’s hold on her mind.

“Come home to us, Marie” Lexa whispered into the girl’s ears before she finally sat back, just as Risha let out a loud howl.

~ ~ ~

As soon as Alie finally vanished from her view and she did exactly that, one second, she was there, in the blink of an eye, the woman was gone, Marie finally rose from her desk.

She felt more than saw Maura looking at her with what could be an accusative glare, which looked all wrong on the otherwise smiling and cheerful expression.

Marie tried to ignore the goosebumps rising on her arms though and simply left the classroom. In the hall things appeared even stranger. Another girl was on the corridor, roughly her own age judging from the size. But it almost appeared as if she was glitching. Marie didn’t understand how this was possible. The girl seemed to switch between being a few meters ahead of her, disappearing and then reappearing a few meters behind her. Even her laugh seemed to be frozen somehow as if she were repeating the same movement non-stop.

A door to her left had a weird huge, almost as if it was half translucent. Tentatively Marie pushed the door open and suddenly found herself in what must be an art room. Pictures were framed on the walls, barely any bare wall was visible beneath them.

Her headache spiked again viciously as she stepped closer to the pictures, peering at them.

It took her eyes a few moments to finally focus on the pictures, although as if they hadn’t wanted her to see them. Even through her confusion, Marie knew that this wasn’t normal.

Her headache continued increasing as she started to recognize the pictures. Names and scenes from far away tried to find their back into her consciousness. The faces on the pictures were blurred and it appeared as if whole shapes were blurred as well. It almost appeared as if the pictures were trying to hide whole things. Thoughtfully Marie mused if one of the blurred forms may be an animal of some kind. Maybe a dog?

Marie’s breath hitched when she felt her whole surroundings flicker and change. She looked down herself with a frown. She wasn’t wearing clothes and she appeared to be standing in water. Faintly she wondered if water wasn’t supposed to feel wet. For some reason she couldn’t understand now, she could see the water, but the sensation was missing.

Laughing pulled her from her internal mussing and she noticed a woman sitting on the platform in front of her. Her feet dangling in the water as she observed her, a smile sat on her features as well. But the laughter had stemmed from the three children surrounding her.

It took a moment for their faces to come into focus and Marie. Although Marie couldn’t remember the name of the boy standing next to her, some faint memory told her that they weren’t strangers to each other. He pushed her into the water as if they had been playing with each other.

His laughter grew louder and when two different hands helped her from the water, Marie looked back at the boy. He appeared happy and healthy, but something about him felt off. She knew he couldn’t possibly be here. Hadn’t she seen him burn?

The girl who had helped her from the ocean was slightly older. Her dark long hair was pulled up in a ponytail and her dark eyes looked down on her kindly. Marie blinked and for a second, she thought to see a flicker of scars on her face, before the skin became smooth and perfect once more.

When she looked back at the first boy, a sharp memory flashed in front of her eyes. The same boy now clearly feverish. A thick bandage wound around one of his hands.

White engulfed herself suddenly, blinding in its intensity and Marie had to close her eyes against the pain.

“This world is full of pain, child” a voice echoed around her, as if it came from everywhere and nowhere in particular. “Why do you insist on fighting for it? I offer you peace, child. Let me take it all away from you.”

A symbol suddenly flickered in front of Marie’s closed eyes. She knew the symbol. She had seen it countless times, although she failed to recall where. When she focused on it, it suddenly appeared on someone’s neck.

“Lexa” it sounded through her mind, and she remember the green eyes from before again. “Mommy” another memory supplied.

And just as Alie appeared directly in front of her again, Marie clenched one of her hands. “You are not real” she said in a firm tone, knowing her word to be true. “But they are!”

As Alie seemed to flicker into non-existence in front of her eyes, Marie heard a very faint howl, as if the sound originated from somewhere extremely far away.

The art room she had appeared in once again was now weirdly empty. The frames of the pictures were still there, but nothing hung in them.

Marie huffed at them. She did not understand how it was possible, but she was sure that the art must be imprints of her memories. But where had they disappeared to?

As Alie had left her, Marie returned to the hall. It was empty as well. The door to the art room which had been translucent before, wasn’t so anymore.

Instead, Marie saw another translucent door now and she identified the door as the one leading to the class she had been in before.

Cautiously, Marie crept back through the hall towards the door. It wasn’t just translucent, it seemed to glow.

None of the other doors on the hall were opened before Marie reached the classroom door and stepped back inside.

She blinked a few seconds at the change of scenery. Where the classroom had been filled with other pupils and the teacher what felt to her as mere second ago, it was deserted now. But it wasn’t just void of other people, no, the light seemed to have vanished as well.

The only thing emitting a soft hue was the desk on the very front of the room. Most likely the desk of the teacher Marie mused for a moment. Could it be that something was guiding her with this weird light?

She didn’t know. But it didn’t feel alien or frightening and Marie felt herself relax the tiniest bit as she stepped closer to the desk on silent feet.

She could lift the top of the desk easily. The sight which greeted her was surprising to say the least. The pictures she had seen before all blurred and weird in the art room were distributed within the desk, almost as if someone had dumped them in there without any care.

Names and memories reappeared within her mind as she took in the pictures. There was Lexa and Anya soothing her in the commander’s chambers. There was Risha playing ball with her. There was Ontari reading a story to her. There were the training pits in Polis and there was picture of the glittering ocean and oil rig the Boat People lived on.

The air seemed to shift around her and suddenly Alie stood right in front of her. One of her hands had reached out towards the desk, obviously intent on closing it again.

“No one has fought this much before” Alie considered her for a silent moment and her eyes seemed to narrow down. “Why are you so afraid of letting go? This world will keep your memories safe; you have no use of them here.”

Marie immediately shook her head. The faces of those she loved briefly flashed before her eyes. She didn’t belong her, she belonged wherever Lexa and Anya were, together with Ontari and Risha.

“They’re not safe here” she insisted strongly. She hadn’t been able to remember anything before she had been able to gaze at them. Her memory still only consisted of the brief scenes she had seen there. “You aren’t them!”

Alie tilted her head sideways, clearly confused by Marie’s resistance. She looked down at the desk and pulled something out of it. Holding up a few specific scenes for Marie as well.

Flashes of watching her mother waste away, of watching Tris die, of being left the Mountain, of losing her memory and her time with Ice Queen all at once assaulted her mind.

Marie staggered backwards from the desk blindly, gasping against the onslaught and she let out an involuntary scream of pure and raw pain.

“See what I am protecting you from?” Alie’s voice was calm as she asked.

Marie still backed away from the woman, shaking her head vehemently. Through tightly clenched teeth she ground out “You don’t owe me. Let me go!”

She screamed the last words as strongly as she could and suddenly everything around her seemed to vibrate. She had never experienced an earthquake, but from what she had read about it, she guessed it would look like this.

Cracks split across the walls, jagged and growing. The furniture trembled. Alie’s image glitched violently, her body flickering in and out like a broken hologram.

“I offer you peace,” her voice echoed, unnaturally calm — over and over, as if the world itself was caught in a skipping loop.

The last thing Marie saw before the room collapsed into static was a vivid image of Polis—shimmering like a beacon through the storm.

~ ~ ~

With a gasp as if someone had pulled her out of deep water while she was drowning, Marie sat up again. She immediately felt the rough surface beneath herself, felt the flickering warmth of the fire on one sight of her body, felt Risha’s weight lying across her legs and smelled Lexa’s scent engulfing her.

Lexa quickly reached out to the girl, taking her blindly feeling hands into her own.

Before she could say anything, Marie opened her mouth. The girl’s eyes weren’t empty like they had been before, instead they were worried and clearly showed her fear. “They are inside Polis, Mommy.”

Chapter 42: Chapter 286 – What Remains in the Flame

Chapter Text

Whatever had transpired in the City of Light had obviously deeply shook Marie.

Clarke had spent a few minutes assessing the obviously bewildered child, while Marie had steadfastly refused to let go of Lexa’s hand. Physically Marie seemed well, beside the large lump still on her head.

Her grey eyes looked between Anya who hovered behind Clarke uncertainly and Lexa non-stop, reluctantly letting the blonde healer prob and poke at her. The child refused to let go of the commander’s hand even for a second.

The two Trikru women already worried that their daughter’s presence of mind would not last. Whatever this AI was, would unlikely give up so quickly. Could they somehow anchor the girl?

“What did you see, Marie?” Lexa asked firmly, urgency evident within her tone heavily.

Marie’s expression seemed to waver for a moment before she answered. “Polis” she said “A bright image of Polis and something spreading there. Alie is spreading there. She’s not just in the people.”

“Who is Alie?” Anya interjected confusedly.

Raven and Sinclair had listened to girl’s words attentively and started to whisper between each other. The only thing Lexa caught, before the child caught her attention again was “They’ve breached the tech layer.”

Marie blinked at them in confusion “Didn’t I make it back?” fear creeped into her voice.

Lexa squeezed the child’s fingers gently “We’re real. You’re here, little star.” She tried reassuring their daughter in a purposefully soft tone.

The girl struggled to sit up and get to her knees, hugging Lexa and Anya with one arm each as she started to cry.

Over one of the general’s shoulders she spotted Risha standing on its hindlegs, front paws placed on Anya’s back. The wolf was obviously trying to push its muzzle beneath Marie’s arm wound around the general’s neck.

Lexa tightened her own arm around the child’s smaller body with a heavy sigh. Soothing the girl when she cried was something they had done countless times by now. She could do this, but how could they save Marie from something invisible within her mind?

In the end the girl cried herself to sleep, apparently drained from what had occurred. The exhaustion of the previous day and sleepless night caught up with Lexa as well.

As Markus and Bellamy had not returned yet, Anya insisted on keeping watch. Sinclair, Raven, and Clarke had all but crashed down a little while after Marie had drifted to sleep. The commander fought against her own exhaustion for as long as she could, fearing that Marie wouldn’t wake as herself in the morning.

She watched Marie’s body twitching slightly at random intervals, but trying to sooth the girl by keeping physical touch didn’t show any effect, as it usually did.

She felt her eyes fall shut almost involuntarily. Although Lexa had not tried to meditate, she recognized immediately that she wasn’t really dreaming.

Lexa was standing in the throne room in Polis. Her body felt somehow off though, and she looked down at her hands, they were noticeably smaller. She was obviously younger again. She couldn’t pinpoint to what point in her past the vision had taken her, but she couldn’t have been commander for long. The large shoulder pauldron sat heavily on her shoulder, too large for her small frame. The weight of her responsibility almost too much and when Lexa turned, she noticed Becca standing beside her.

Lexa remembered now. The meeting with the first commander she was seeing again now, had happened just a few days after her ascension to power.

Becca had just introduced herself as the first commander and her expression had been kind and friendly. Lexa now realized how hopeful the older woman appeared, obviously pleased by who had taken up the mantle of the commander now.

Becca’s words didn’t quiet register in her mind now though and she frowned. She knew from her own memory, that the first commander had introduced her to the basic concept of the flame, explaining how they’d be forever connected to the line of command and thus, develop further.

No matter how much Lexa tried to focus on Becca’s words, they weren’t audible. She turned more fully towards the first commander, trying to reach out to her.

“The flame will guide you,” Becca had said then—Lexa remembered it now. But in the warped replay, the words dissolved into static, replaced by ALIE’s chilling whisper: “I offer you peace.”

The image of Becca flickered noticeably and when their gaze met now, Lexa was met by a prominent red glow within her eyes.

The commander jolted awake fully once more at this sight. She obviously had been silent in her dream or vision or whatever it really was and she hadn’t woken anyone. She didn’t understand how this was possible. The first meeting in meditation with the first commander had happened years ago. How was it possible that this memory changed now?

Lexa was still holding Marie’s smaller hand in her own. The girl’s skin temperature thankfully felt regular to the touch. She could hear the soft sounds of her breathing next to her and Lexa saw Clarke asleep not far away from them.

She considered waking the blonde for a moment, decided against it though, when she noticed that Markus and Bellamy were still on their patrol. She could not have been asleep for longer than a few minutes and exhaustion pulled at her mind again.

~ ~ ~

Her fears unfortunately came true later. The quiet of the night was disturbed when Risha suddenly howled again.

Lexa sat up in a flash, while Anya grumbled awake more slowly. Apparently, Markus and Bellamy had returned a while ago and the general had been too tired to stand guard for the rest of the night.

The others of the group all jolted awake as well at the animal’s almost broken sound, which echoed through the small hunter’s stall. For a moment Lexa assumed that they had been discovered, but no one was at the entrance of the stall and Risha’s attention was fully on Marie’s still form.

Suddenly the girl’s body on the ground gave a violent twitch upwards, almost as if she was seizing. The seizure stopped only a moment later and Marie’s body once again lay completely still on the ground.

Clarke and Raven both rushed over to Marie quickly. Clarke intent on assessing the girl’s body, fearing that the seizure indicated a problem with her brain. Raven wanted to connect the child to her device once again.

The screen showed a completely different picture now. Instead of a spike which had been visible before, the small screen now showed a kind of wave.

“This is intense” Raven observed the scan thoughtfully. “I am not sure what, but something is definitely happening.”

Anya was now fully awake as well and gripped onto the commander’s shoulder strongly. The older woman needed the touch just as much as her former second. “She’s fighting this, Lexa. Marie is strong, she won’t lose. Our daughter will want to return to us.”

Clarke couldn’t detect any change in the child’s vital signs. The only thing which was noteworthy was a slight tremor in her fingers, while the rest of her body was utterly still. “As long as we can’t figure out how to reach her, I don’t think there is anything we can do.”

Lexa nodded with a deep sigh.

“Commander” Markus addressed her with a clearly troubled expression. “We had not wanted to disturb you, but we saw something during the patrol.”

Lexa looked up at the older man sharply. Annoyance rising quickly at the way Skykru operated. She knew for a fact that none of her own scouts would’ve just let her sleep if they had found anything even remotely important.

She kept her annoyed retort in check though when she noted on Bellamy’s troubled expression, for once not tainted by hatred. Venting her frustration at them would be easy, but she knew it wouldn’t help them or their daughter.

The commander and general listened raptly to the retelling.

It was Bellamy who started speaking. “We’ve encountered a child. I would guess the boy wasn’t older than ten, probably younger. I wanted to ask him if he needed help, I noticed too late that he wasn’t standing there helpless, but rather just motionless, staring at nothing. When I got closer to him, he met my gaze for a second. His eyes…” the young man paused for a moment, and it was clear he was spooked by what they had seen.

“They glowed red, not like they were bloodshot” Markus chimed in, lying a hand supportively on Bellamy’s shoulder. The older man’s voice was firm when he continued their enumeration. “The glow stayed even in the dark, when a cloud passed by the moon, only his glowing eyes stood out. The boy rapidly turned around and ran, but he seemed to flicker, almost as if he was a broken hologram.” He addressed his last words more towards Raven and Sinclair.

Lexa and Anya shared a worried glance. “You mean to say that these keys change them?” Anya’s voice quivered suspiciously. “That doesn’t sound like a normal child.”

Bellamy slightly shook his head, suspicion dawning on his features. “The boy seemed familiar to me. I can’t pinpoint it, but I am sure if met him” he paused for a moment “He looked like one of the children I met in the Mountain.”

Lexa shuddered at the implication and her grip tightened on Marie’s lax hand. Horror dawned in her mind. Had this child the two Skykru had crossed even been real?

“Could this…” the commander faltered in with her words for a moment “… AI create this in the real world?”

Raven finally joined the conversation after a moment of silent contemplation. “If the AI, I mean Alie, was able to access the code of the flame in Polis, I think so. The program may now have access to memories, which it can repurpose and create kind of avatars.”

“I don’t think this was just a memory” Markus declined in a grave tone. “It looked more as if it was scouting for us.”

Lexa wasn’t sure what Raven could’ve meant with “the code of the flame”, but she didn’t care to ask in this moment. The mechanic had started working on the small key again anyway. Spare parts of old tech had been within the backpack Anya had brought back and the younger woman was obviously trying to piece together something else now. She doubted she would have understood the mechanic’s explanation of “code” anyway.

She had already understood before that keeping Marie with them was a potential threat. The girl was linked to this AI now. Her consciousness could obviously be controlled by it somehow, although Marie appeared to be fighting it somehow. She hadn’t wanted to admit that fact, even to herself.

Now she wondered if it would be possible for Marie to be turned into this kind of hologram. She was focusing on their daughter or at least trying to stay focused on her alone. She had no real idea how they would be able to fight this though. How could they win against controlled opponents who did not feel pain or exhaustion?

She didn’t know how to move forward. It seemed as if Raven and Sinclair were missing information to help them fight this threat from a technical side. But could they gather this information from the key, from herself or maybe even from Marie?

We should get moving soon” Anya addressed her lowly, crouching down next to her and Marie’s unconscious form.

The commander inclined her head in agreement. She knew that waiting here would not help them. If this thing already knew of their location trying to hide didn’t sound like a good plan. She didn’t understand though why their invisible opponent wasn’t acting yet.

I know we need to get to Polis” the commander added, but internally she was afraid of they would find there. She dearly hoped Titus and the conclave had not been caught off guard by this new threat. Of course, there were protocols in place to evacuate the conclave to safe places outside of Polis in any case of emergency where barricading in the tower wasn’t an option. She could only pray that the flamekeepers had recognized this threat as something they wouldn’t be able to physically guard the conclave against.

If she truly listened to her deepest worries, she wondered if there even would be a commander again after herself. If the flame was indeed connected to this and now could be manipulated, what her dream had just shown, she feared what this would mean for their line of ascension in the future.

Her thoughts were interrupted once more by Risha, who suddenly lunged up and for once abandoned its place right next to Marie. The wolf now stood directly in front of the entrance to the hunter’s shelter. The wolf growled viciously into the dark and the light blue eyes seemed to stare at something neither of them were able to physically see.

Anya lunged towards the entrance as well, dagger in hand, ready to protect them against whoever was trying to get inside. The general lowered her dagger with a clearly confused expression. Nothing was in front of the door, no movement visible a few meters away either.

Risha continued to growl in warning though, still staring at something seemingly invisible.

The device in Raven’s hand picked up what she called “residual electromagnetic energy”. This time she didn’t have to explicitly explain that something non-corporeal had just been there.

Lexa felt Marie’s body increasing its twitching next to her. With no better idea, the commander scooped the girl’s smaller body up and pressed the child against her chest. Internally she hoped that some part of Marie’s consciousness was still able to feel her presence. Maybe it would lend her strength to continue fighting.

“We’re not hidden anymore” Bellamy said the words cautiously. The helplessness on what to do was obvious on his features as well.

~ ~ ~

In the end they agreed to wait for first light. The illusion that they would be able to enter Polis undetected had been shattered for every member of the small group. Their opponent knew exactly just where they were. Moving through darkness would only mean further risk for accidents.

Raven finally managed to have a small breakthrough with the key. Lexa and Anya still sat beside Marie, who continued to twitch occasionally, as the mechanic suddenly got visibly excited.

“There is a cognitive mapping software within this beside the AI’s code” the brunette proclaimed towards Sinclair. The man’s expression darkened visibly.

“A what?” Clarke asked confusedly “Like blueprints of memories?”

Raven shook her head “It’s more, Clarke, it’s kind of like a soul in machine form.” The mechanic seemed baffled by the possibilities of this program. The alarmed expression on her features did also show how dangerous this could be.

“I have never heard of an AI this advanced” Sinclair added to the discussion. “This is more than just accessing memories, it’s reshaping reality with it.”

Lexa felt her heart skip a beat. She had told Clarke and Anya in hushed whispers of the interaction she had with the first commander a little while ago, emphasizing the red glow of Becca’s eyes.

While Sinclair and Raven started discussing how they could weaponize this function against the AI, Lexa was shell shocked. How deep did this AI reach already? If it had reached the flame within her, and she believed her changed dream to be proof of that, how could she trust herself anymore? How would she recognize what parts of her were still real?

Clarke must have read some of her internal struggle and Lexa startled slightly, when she felt the blonde’s hand lying supportively on one of her arms. “Hey, you are still here, holding her hand is real.”

Lexa swallowed forcefully against the sudden large lump in her throat, touched by the blonde’s gesture.

Anya’s brown eyes which regarded her infused with worry and compassion were a silent testament of the general’s continued support. She had never considered Anya’s loyalty to be a possible danger. Briefly, Sierra’s treachery repeated within her mind. She hoped that Anya’s loyalty to Marie would be greater than to herself. It seemed possible that a time could come, where the flame could corrupt her, thus, the general may be forced to kill her.

She had always known that her life expectancy as commander to her people was limited. But she had never thought to have to fear her own mind. She had always been able to rely on her quick and rational thinking, being able to make hard decision. Meditating to counsel with the commanders before her almost came natural to her now. She could not help herself but wonder if their guidance ever had been real.

Raven and Sinclair had continued to brood together over what the mechanic had been able to extract from the key.

Lexa silenced her dark thoughts but did not try to gentle her expression when she regarded them again. It seemed as if they had found more.

Anya watched the commander in silence. She had been through many difficult times with Lexa. Before she had usually been able to support her former second through her military expertise or just by being there for her. It dawned on her finally that they were not just in danger of losing Marie, but just how grave this threat was to Lexa as well. Separating the commander from the brunette Trikru woman wasn’t possible. She had never heard of the flame being removed from a living commander. Internally she wondered if it wouldn’t be worth the risk though. If Lexa fell against this AI, nothing would be able to stop its distribution through their whole world. If she had to choose between Marie and Lexa, Anya feared she already knew the answer. And that truth terrified her.

“There seems to be some kind of countermeasure protocol within this. It was hidden deep, and I can’t access it. It’s encrypted in a way I never encountered before. I can’t tell for sure what this protocol is able to do, but I guess it most likely either reboots the system or gives a complete shutdown command” Raven explained as calmly as she could.

Lexa and Anya both had difficulties in understanding fully what the Skykru woman was trying to tell them. What Lexa did understand was, that there may be a way to stop this AI from controlling everything. Although she had no idea what a “reboot” or a “complete shutdown command” were, neither sounded too good for those linked to the keys and for herself.

Clarke’s expression had fallen “So, we may have found something, which could be the only way to cut Alie out, but we’d risk losing Marie’s and potentially even Lexa’s mind?”

Anya already shook her head in the negative and her jaw clenched tightly. She could not rationally agree with this plan of action, although she internally had to agree that she had no logical plan yet either.

Lexa’s expression switched from dark to neutral and she seemed to straighten herself. She had understood already that her own existence was in great peril, just as she had accepted that rescuing Marie may not be possible.

Clarke turned to Lexa fully once Raven had nodded her agreement to her previous question. “If that shutdown code works” she faltered in her words and her blue eyes easily depicted that she was internally torn apart, “… we could destroy her.” The healer had obviously decided to focus on the possible positive outcome.

Lexa’s jaw clenched again. “Or destroy Marie” she ground out through her teeth. Her voice was barely above as a whisper as she added “Or me”.

When Anya started to object, the commander immediately silenced her. She had understood enough information to accept deep down that she’d be the key to this.

“One way or another it is coming down to the flame” Raven agreed gravely. “There are most likely relays built into Polis—like an ancient meshnet. If she’s tapped into that, she’s not just in the people. She’s in the walls.”

„How can this shutdown command be started?” Clarke voiced the question and Lexa already dreaded to hear the answer, although she felt it in her bones already.

Raven seemed to contemplate the answer barely for more than a second. “Pretty sure it needs to be inserted into the flame and manually triggered from inside.”

Marie jostling awake once more without any forewarning, broke up the discussion. Lexa’s and Anya’s attention was immediately solely on their child. Both feared to see Marie’s eyes glow red now. Thankfully, they were still their usual grey color, and she obviously recognized them as well. Risha didn’t growl at the girl either, instead the wolf’s tail wagged at the girl in greeting. A sight Lexa and Anya both knew well.

Marie’s voice seemed deeply alarmed as she addressed her mothers “She’s inside Polis, all of it, not just the people, the walls, the systems, everywhere.”

Lexa and Anya once again bandied a short glance, while either of them held one of the child’s hands gently.

“We need to return to Polis immediately” Lexa turned to the rest of the group “If this thing controls Polis, it will soon control all of us.”

Marie’s fear only seemed to mount when it was clear they would need to get moving as soon as possible.

“Will the city take me again?” the child asked in a shaky tone, holding on to their hands strongly.
Lexa squeezed her hand reassuringly and answered honestly. We won’t allow that.”

Chapter 43: Chapter 287 – Into the Core

Chapter Text

Getting the group ready to leave the hunter’s shelter behind only took a little while thankfully as they didn’t have much to pack.

Lexa kept close watch on the different reactions to what they had discovered—if even out of habit. Whatever this City of Light was doing to Marie was taking a very visible toll on her body. The commander hoped she was only imagining it, but to her it appeared as if the child’s complexion had grown paler, her eyes slightly sunken in, her cheekbones sharper—like the girl had truly begun to waste away again.

Anya seemed to notice too. While Raven and Sinclair packed away their tech, the general forced Marie to eat a few scraps of the leftover rabbit she had caught the day before.

Marie struggled. Each bite seemed like a mountain to climb. She chewed every piece as though her mouth were filled with sand.

“I’m not hungry,” the girl mumbled, barely meeting Lexa’s eyes who had watched her with rising worry. They all knew the girl needed her physical strength.

Lexa didn’t respond, but her heart twisted. Was it the AI anchoring itself deeper into Marie’s mind? A grip they couldn’t see but clearly felt?

After a few sips of water coaxed from her by Anya, Marie ran her fingers through Risha’s fur. A ghost of a smile passed her lips, brief and distant.

“How do you feel physically?” Clarke asked, a smile stretched thin over her worry.

Marie’s smile vanished at once. Her grip on the wolf’s fur tightened. Risha gave her a disgruntled stare but didn’t move away.

“Normal,” Marie said—though her voice betrayed the lie.

She looked away in guilt, perhaps remembering all the times she had been taught to speak truth, especially to the two women she now regarded as her mothers.

“What is it, little star?” Anya’s voice held the edge of a command and the softness of a mother.

Marie’s eyes flicked to her immediately. “I can feel her…” she whispered, then clamped her jaw shut. Her hand clenched in Risha’s fur. The wolf gave a low whine but remained by her side.

Marie flinched again—this time at Raven’s voice: “The signals are broadening. Denser. She’s weaving herself into everything.”

“I don’t want to go back there,” Marie admitted lowly. She let go of the wolf at last, opening and closing her fingers as though afraid of her own strength.

Anya gently switched to Trigedasleng, and Clarke, catching the unspoken signal to give them privacy, left. She joined Bellamy and Sinclair, who were debating their path to Polis.

We don’t know what we’ll face there,” Anya said seriously, eyes on both Lexa and Marie. “But we’ll protect you. You’re ours now. Forever.”

She took Marie’s hand and gave it a squeeze. Lexa mirrored the motion, offering their daughter a forced smile, fragile and aching.

It became clear that choosing a path was no longer their decision. Raven identified a pattern in the spreading signal—most routes were now overrun. One remained clean; it would be insanity to ignore that. Although all of them knew this could be some form of trap as well.

Marie insisted that Lexa and Anya flank her so she could hold both their hands. And so, they began to walk in silence. A silence that went deeper than the group—a forest gone still, wildlife vanished, even the wind seeming to watch them.

Then the hallucinations began.

Lexa stumbled for a moment, her breath catching when she saw a flicker—Costia, between two trees, eyes full of quiet sorrow. Just as quickly, she was gone.

Clarke froze nearby, wide-eyed, lips parted in recognition. “Finn,” she whispered—but said no more.

Markus flinched visibly. “My mother,” he muttered.

And Anya… her eyes widened just slightly, fixed on something beside her that no one else could see. Tris. Walking beside her.

Only Marie seemed to resist. She shook her head rhythmically, almost violently, whispering a soft lullaby that Lexa had taught her, barely audible but steady.

They paused as Raven stared down at her screen, pale. “She’s getting stronger faster than I thought possible.” Her fingers on the device worked faster.

Clarke used the moment to draw near to Lexa, voice low. “I don’t know if we can fight this,” she admitted, barely above a whisper. “I can’t bear the thought of losing you.”

Lexa had no answer. Not one that would mean anything. She was scared too.

Clarke’s fingers trembled where they curled around Lexa’s wrist. “I’ve watched too many people change into something unrecognizable. If that happens to you… I don’t know if I’ll survive it again.” Her voice was frayed at the edges.

But before she had to say anything, Marie let go of their hands and stepped forward. Her expression seemed far away. “She’s already rewriting the entrance. We don’t have much time.”

The others followed quickly, though Marie didn’t take anyone’s hand again. She walked ahead; a touch surer of herself. Anya wasn’t sure whether to be hopeful or terrified by the change of behavior.

They neared the final ridgeline above the Polis valley.

The city shimmered ahead bathed in a haze, the skyline veiled by an unnatural pulsing glow. The air itself seemed artificial now, vibrating with quiet menace. Then Risha began to growl.

In an instant, the wolf turned and retreated into the trees.

Marie’s head turned—but she didn’t move to follow.

Something had claimed her focus now.

Raven suddenly lifted her device, blinking. “We’ve got movement. Four life signs, approaching fast.”

Lexa signaled hastily. Everyone dropped low into a shadowed thicket just in front of them.

Four figures came into view—Grounder armor, moving in perfect sync. No speech. No hesitation. Eyes glowing a cold, steady red.

Marie’s hand reached for Lexa’s sleeve. “I’ve seen them in the City,” she whispered. “Toren. Mavi. From the village.”

Anya’s throat bobbed. “They were taken?” Internally she wondered if Marie had ever been introduced to them.

Marie didn’t blink. “They don’t even know who they were anymore.”

One of the patrols stopped. Head cocked, like a dog listening.

They all held their breath, weapons ready in case they needed to strike.

And then the red-eyed warrior moved on.

But it left something behind: a cold that clung to the trees. A silence that felt full of teeth.

When the others resumed gathering gear, Anya remained beside Lexa. “You need to start thinking like a commander again.”

Lexa didn’t answer at first.

For a moment, the ridgeline faded away, and she was no longer standing above Polis but crouched in the mud of a training pit, twelve years old and covered in bruises.

Anya’s voice echoed in her ears—not urgent or tender as it was now, but sharp, commanding, unrelenting: “Heda is not afraid. Heda endures.”

That day, Lexa had bled from a split lip and a cracked rib, but she hadn’t cried. Even when Anya had dragged her to her feet by the front of her tunic and snarled, “There will come a time when your pain does not matter. Not to your people. Not to you. You will still rise. Or you will be replaced.”

It had felt cruel back then.

Now, she understood it had been the beginning of love, in the way Anya knew how to give it.

That lesson—about rising, about being replaceable—clawed at her chest now.

If you fall under ALIE’s control… you will be replaced.

By death. By the call Anya was preparing herself to make.

Lexa’s eyes closed briefly. She no longer bled from the lip, but inside, something cracked just the same.

Lexa didn’t look at her, eyes still on the forest path, searching where the wolf had disappeared. “I am” she finally said with great effort.

“Then act like it. Because we both know: if ALIE takes your mind—or Marie’s—someone must make the call.”

Lexa froze. “No.”

Anya turned to her. “It’s not weakness. It’s strategy. We prepare for failure in every battle.”

“I said no.” Lexa’s voice cracked like thunder, low and sharp.

“You can’t protect her if you're rewritten. And you know what happens then. Clarke will hesitate. Marie will hesitate.”

“I would never turn on them.” Lexa insisted instantly, green eyes blazing angrily at the mere accusation.

“No one chooses to,” Anya said softly.

Lexa’s chest rose, then fell. Her fists trembled.

A long pause.

“Would you do it?” Lexa whispered.

The general didn’t answer immediately. Anya’s jaw clenched. “If I had to.”

Lexa’s nod was barely perceptible. “Make it fast.”

It was the only permission Anya would ever get. And it broke her more than any battlefield wound.

Anya held Lexa’s gaze, something flickering in her own eyes — grief, defiance, or maybe both. “I trained you to lead,” she said at last. “Not to fall alone.”

As they neared the outskirts of the city, Lexa found herself walking beside Sinclair.

“You’ve been watching me,” she said plainly, simply observing a fact.

“I’ve been worried” the older man agreed easily.

Lexa glanced sideways, eyes narrowing at him. “You think I’ll fail.”

“I think you’re trying to win a war with weapons you don’t understand.” Sinclair’s voice was gentle. “This isn’t a matter of blades and tactics.”

“You think the Flame is part of this,” Lexa said quietly. Although she knew the answer herself already.

“I know it is. Becca built ALIE. Then she built the Flame to stop her. But if ALIE accessed the source code from within Polis… there’s no telling what she’s done.”

Lexa’s expression didn’t change, but her steps slowed.

“She could already be inside the Flame?” she asked, although she felt the answer within her very soul.

Sinclair nodded once. “Inside you.”

Lexa said nothing more. Although she remained silent outwardly, internally was a different matter. Her thoughts were doing running wild and uncontrolled. She tried to remember the times directly after her ascension to power. The pain where Titus had inserted the flame into her body had been uncomfortable at best. She had been wounded worse in the actual conclave and still, her people needed to see her physically strong and steady. She remembered meeting the first commander. Becca had greeted her in the throne room, and she had been told the line of the commanders. She had been required to recite it to secure her claim as the rightful new leader. She tried to remember how it had felt back then. Her mind struggled deeply with the concept that the flame was also an AI. Had she felt it changing her? She couldn’t remember and that frustrated her to no end.

Instead of answering, she just picked up her pace, marching forward into the unknown.

The tower’s flame glowed with eerie intensity, pulsing like a heartbeat.

They would enter through the tunnels. The most hidden path left.

But the city wasn’t the same. Structures had moved. Walls stood where none had before.

“The whole city’s hijacked,” Raven confirmed, scanning the skyline.

Suddenly, Marie stumbled. Her body jerked like a pulse of electricity had passed through her, and she dropped to her knees.

Anya caught her barely in time, unable to see if the girl’s eyes had glowed red or not.

“The city doesn’t want me back,” Marie whispered, barely audible. She was shaking visibly and shuddered. “It’s like I am a virus now” her voice sounded hollow and hopeless.

And Anya flinched at the weight of that truth. She felt helpless, unable to sooth or reassure their daughter sufficiently. But what was there to say?

~ ~ ~

The next bend in the tunnel was wrong.

At first, no one said anything. The air just felt... off. Heavier. Too still, but buzzing at the same time, like their lungs were full of static.

Then they saw it—an entire stretch of the tunnel wall up ahead had changed. Not rebuilt. Not broken. Rewritten.

The bricks had been replaced by smooth, seamless metal—shimmering faintly with a sickly green hue, almost organic. Thin veins of light pulsed across it like circuitry. And in the center: a faint, flickering image.

Not one image. Dozens, flashing faster than the eye could track.

Faces. People they knew.

Costia. Tris. Finn. Lincoln. Kane. A version of Clarke, smiling eerily. Even Lexa saw her own face—twisted, cracked like a broken mirror, whispering something inaudible behind the flicker.

They all froze.

Raven whispered, “She’s using our memories. These are memory triggers, not projections. She’s... harvesting them.”

Marie stumbled, pressing both hands to her ears. “Make it stop.”

Lexa stepped forward instinctively, but the wall reacted. The flickering images snapped into one — Clarke’s face, dead and pale, her blue eyes wide and empty, staring straight at Lexa.

Clarke gasped behind her.

“No,” Lexa growled.

The lights in the tunnel flickered. The static intensified, not in their ears but in their skulls, like a frequency that bypassed hearing altogether.

Marie dropped to her knees.

Lexa turned sharply. “We go around.”

Raven scanned the structure quickly. “There’s no physical path. But I might be able to—”

“Then do it now,” Anya barked, pulling Marie close and shielding her from the wall’s light.

Raven moved, her hands shaking slightly, but precise. As she opened a panel and began her work, she muttered, “It’s not just broadcasting memories. It’s trying to overwrite them. Trying to make us forget what’s real.”

“Hold onto what’s yours,” Clarke said quietly. Her hand gripped Lexa’s. “Hold onto each other.”

Lexa did.

They all did.

And the wall flickered one final time before the current broke.

The tunnel entrance lay hidden beneath a tangle of vines and rubble, as if the earth itself had tried to swallow it whole. Raven pushed the last rusted grate aside, her fingers shaking slightly as she checked her scanner one more time.

"This is the last clean channel we’ve got," she muttered. "The surface is crawling with signal interference. Down here... it's quiet. For now."

Lexa motioned to the others to follow. The narrow tunnel swallowed their light as they entered, one by one. Every bootstep echoed down stone corridors older than the tower itself.

Lexa kept Marie close, Anya on her heels. The girl’s small hand was cool in hers. Too cool. Her complexion, already pale, had drained even further in the past hour. The shadows painted her cheeks with hollows, making her look less like a child and more like a ghost.

Marie hesitated at the entrance. "She’s here already," she whispered, her voice barely more than breath. When Marie dropped to her knees, her breath hitched as if she were choking on air that wasn’t there. “She knows I’m here,” she rasped. “She’s waiting for me.”

Lexa knelt beside her, brushing damp hair from the girl’s face. “Then we hold the line. No matter how deep she reaches.” Her voice held more certainty than her heart. It had to. Marie looked up at her, eyes hollow but trusting, and Lexa felt the weight of that gaze like a chain around her soul.

Lexa’s grip tightened. "Then stay with me. Don’t let go."

Both of them had drawn their weapons now, neither sure if there would be any need for them.

Lexa only felt slightly reassured by the members of Skykru still carrying guns. She somehow doubted they would be of substantial help.

The first stretch was silent save for the buzz of Raven’s device and the wet drip of condensation along the walls. The damp air thickened with every step, and the further they descended, the more the walls seemed to shimmer—not visually, but in some deeper way. A feeling in the bones.

Lexa blinked, and for just a second, saw a version of herself reflected in a jagged metal panel ahead—eyes glowing red, mouth curled into a smile she’d never worn. She looked away quickly. Her pulse quickened.

Raven's voice cut through the darkness. "Watch your step here. The power grid is... flickering."

The deeper they moved beneath Polis, the more the silence stretched—not just around them, but between them.

It was the kind of quiet that could cut.

Bellamy walked near the front, his jaw set, watching Marie with veiled suspicion. Clarke stayed close to Lexa, glancing at her every few steps as if afraid she might vanish or change in front of her eyes. Sinclair kept his gaze half on his tech, half on Raven, who was muttering softly to herself—calculations, maybe, or just trying to stay sane.

No one dared to raise their voice above a whisper.

Even Risha’s absence felt heavy. Marie had glanced over her shoulder twice, as if expecting the wolf to materialize again. But there was only the empty dark.

Anya’s hand hovered protectively near the dagger at her belt. She wasn’t paranoid—she was prepared. Every step Marie took seemed to rattle the general more. Especially when the girl paused to blink at a wall that wasn’t blinking back.

Lexa noticed it all. She had always noticed.

The tension in Clarke’s shoulders, the way her fingers brushed Lexa’s wrist sometimes without realizing. The glances Raven and Sinclair shared, equal parts genius and fear. Even Bellamy—his hate wasn’t boiling anymore, it was just cold. Numb. As if part of him had shut down the moment they crossed into the tunnel.

She looked at Marie, who walked ahead with her hand brushing the wall like she needed the contact to stay anchored. Lexa didn’t know how much longer Marie would stay herself.

Raven adjusted the scanner again, her brow furrowing. “It’s not just signal spikes. She’s rewriting the infrastructure in real time. I’ve never seen anything like it. I’m not sure if I’m reading a building or a brain”

"She’s rewriting it," Marie muttered, walking a half-step ahead. Her voice wasn’t hers. Not entirely.

Bellamy paused. "How do we know she’s not using her to map us?" It was clear the young man’s nerves were frayed and it was different than his usual distrust towards the commander. Hearing it aimed at Marie now was weird.

"Watch your tone," Anya snapped defensively and her hand tightened on her dagger. She felt the need to just struck him down and finally silence his constant annoying attitude thrum hotly in her veins.

"He’s right to ask," Sinclair said carefully. "We just need to be prepared for anything." It was obvious to all of them that Marie could be weaponized against them. He internally wondered if Marie’s continued resistance against the AI wasn’t the reason this hadn’t happened yet.

Lexa turned sharply and her expression was thunderous. "We are not treating her like a threat. She's still our daughter."

For a long beat, no one spoke, barely even dared to breath. Clarke itched to reach out and try to calm the commander, but she kept to herself. Then, the group moved on.

A few turns later, they came across a side chamber. The walls were fused with glowing cables, and roots had burst through the cracks—each one pulsing faintly. Embedded screens looped a distorted video feed, ALIE’s face stretched and flickering.

Lexa stepped closer, transfixed. One screen blinked. Her own face stared back—younger, stronger, with blood-red eyes. Smiling. The smile on the screen was hers, but not. It was a mockery — confident, cold, empty of mercy. She remembered wearing that expression once before battle before blood. But now… now it was someone else’s design wearing her skin.

Her breath caught. She stumbled back in horror.

"Lexa!" Clarke’s voice rang out, grounding her.

Marie stepped in front of her, placing a hand on her arm. "Don’t listen to her. She shows you what you fear."

Even Marie’s touch felt different. Colder.

Raven worked furiously at a nearby panel. "I can kill this signal spike, but we’ve got minutes before it reroutes."

~ ~ ~

The tunnel opened beneath the base of the tower. The walls shimmered with embedded circuitry. The signal here was strong—Raven’s device buzzed erratically.

Lexa felt the shock still in her system. It almost felt as if the hint of electricity crackled through her veins. Alien and foreign. If the flame had been able to do this before, it never happened. She felt unusually lightheaded due to the weird sensations distracting her senses.

"She’s everywhere," Raven murmured.

They reached the final gate — a digital mesh construct, phasing in and out.

"I can spoof it," Raven said. "Buy us time. But the signal will notice."

Lexa stepped forward. Then froze again.

A whisper echoed in her mind — her voice, yet not her own: Bring them in. Let them see.

Her breath hitched. Visions flooded in—herself as Heda, standing above the people, speaking words she didn’t recognize, promising salvation in the City of Light.

Clarke touched her shoulder. "Lexa—?"

Marie gasped, clutching her head as blinding pain engulfed her senses. "She’s in you now too."

Everyone turned towards them in horror. And for a moment—just a moment—Lexa’s eyes shimmered red in the darkness.

Clarke gasped. Everyone froze. A heartbeat passed. Then another. Lexa blinked hard—and the red was gone. But no one moved. Not even her.

Marie’s breathing came in shuddering gulps now. “She’s in all of us,” she whispered. “We’re already inside.”

 

 

 

 

Chapter 44: Chapter 288

Chapter Text

The digital mesh gate at the base of the tower flickered violently, like a wound trying to heal and failing. It cast erratic shadows across the stone floor, each pulse distorting their outlines into grotesque, shifting forms.

Lexa stood frozen at the threshold, blade already drawn, but unmoving. She felt Marie’s hand in hers — too cold, too fragile, like holding a glass figurine that might shatter with a thought. The girl’s breath hitched every time the gate blinked, her wide grey eyes fixed on the warped surface with barely contained dread. But Lexa couldn't look away either, neither could she do anything to sooth the child or her own wildly running thoughts.

The tower ahead — her tower — no longer looked like home to her. The stone base still stood, but its silhouette had been altered, twisted by something unseen. Where once there had been banners and firelight, now there was only circuitry and shadows, humming with quiet, malicious intent. She internally feared if it would be possible to restore it back.

This place raised me, Lexa thought forlornly. And now it doesn't know me.

Behind her, Raven crouched over her tools, hands quick but tense. Sparks spat from a splintered access panel, lighting her grimace in blue flashes. Sinclair leaned close, pointing toward a data node, and speaking in a whisper that betrayed his urgency.

"This is going to trip every sensor she has," Raven muttered, regret thick in her voice. "But we don’t have a choice."

Bellamy and Markus hovered nearby, their guns up but their faces pale. They didn’t speak. There was nothing useful left to say.

Lexa heard Clarke step up beside her, not touching her, just present. She was grateful for the silence, and yet she longed for someone to tell her who she was right now.

She used to be Heda. She used to be certain. She had wavered in the past, but only in the privacy of her own chambers. Finding Costia’s head, leaving Marie behind at the Mountain, thinking the girl killed by the Ice Queen. All of these were just a few moments where the weight of her responsibility had been crushing. But still, her responsibility had also forced her to continue forwards.

Now, with ALIE in the wires and possibly in her own mind, every breath felt like borrowed time. She wasn’t certain if the commander would have a place in the future any longer. A thought she never had to fear before. There had always been a commander and she had been brought up with the conviction that someone would follow after her death immediately.

Marie shivered again. Lexa crouched slightly to be on eye level with her and touched her forehead gently. Even her forehead started to feel too cool. “Do you feel her now?” she tried to address the child calmly but heard her own voice crack slightly.

Marie didn’t speak. But her eyes shimmered with unfallen tears as her fingers trembled noticeably. That was answer enough and Lexa felt her heart ache painfully for their daughter. Anya hovered behind the child protectively, one hand gently placed on her trembling shoulder. The general couldn’t offer any words of reassurance either.

Behind them, the gate stuttered once—twice—then split down the middle, opening with a distorted groan like a dying machine.

“Go!” Raven barked with urgency in her tone, internally unsure how long she could keep this gate open. “Now!”

Lexa squeezed Marie’s hand briefly. Then they stepped into the hollowed heart of the tower, into the dark that had once been her home, just as it had become home to Marie.

~ ~ ~

The moment they stepped through the threshold, the very air around them changed.

It was not simply colder — it was sterile. Hollow. A silence that felt engineered. The walls of the understructure had once been carved stone and reinforced steel, but now they pulsed with an eerie, soft light. Thin, glowing veins of code webbed across the floor and ceiling like roots growing through flesh. Somewhere deep beneath their feet, a low hum vibrated — not loud, but constant, like a heartbeat slowed to a crawl.

Lexa’s boots struck the ground with too much echo. Usually, she was able to walk almost silently, now, trying was no use. The space swallowed every sound and stretched it, as if the structure itself were listening. She highly doubted the AI was unaware of their exact position.

Raven moved ahead, scanning each panel for a few seconds, trying to recognize what was being presented to them. “These aren’t just wires,” she said with narrowed eyes, voice hushed. “They’re active. They’re... alive.”

Marie flinched as one of the walls near her flickered. A screen blinked into existence, unbidden. On it: a grainy but vivid image. Her and Risha, curled together under starlight — the first night she had smiled after being back from the Ice Queen and regaining her memory. Anya had taken her on a short scouting trip without Ontari and she could see the general’s dark silhouette sitting close to her. The wolf licked her cheek, and the girl on the screen laughed — a pure, unbroken sound.

Marie stopped walking as her gaze was glued to the screen. A deep longing to be back in that moment instead of standing her was evident on her pale features.

Lexa followed her gaze, and something cold settled in her spine. She hadn’t been there to witness the scene, but she didn’t doubt it’s existence. The girl’s troubled expression already confirmed it to be real.

“That’s not a recording,” Raven said grimly as realization set in. “She’s pulling it from memory. In real-time.”

Sinclair ran a handheld device across a glowing archway. “It’s worse than that. She’s using neural mapping to project echo memories across the physical structure. You’re not just seeing them. Your brain is experiencing them.”

Marie took a step back, eyes glassy. “If she copies everything inside us… do we stop being real?” Her voice barely rose above a whisper.

Clarke stepped toward her but hesitated. She looked to Lexa instead.

Lexa crouched in front of their daughter, searching her pale face. “Not while you resist,” she said firmly. “Not while you fight her.”

Marie nodded faintly, but her gaze lingered on the screen. The laughter faded, replaced by static. Then: a new image took up its place.

It was Lexa who froze at the new scenery. It was the throne room — her throne room. But at the same time, it wasn’t her throne room, it was wrong. It was rebuilt in polished steel and covered in those same glowing tendrils which were all around them now. The most upsetting thing was who sat on the throne. She saw a version of herself sitting there. She was older than she was now, and her features appeared carved from stone, complexion deathly pale and illuminated unnaturally by a weird crown. The crown seemed to be built of circuitry. Her red-lit eyes stared straight out at them through the screen.

The real Lexa’s breath caught audibly. A strange tightness wrapped around her ribs, making it difficult to continue breathing. Something within her began to break at the implication.

“She's showing us who we could become,” Clarke said quietly beside her. The pain she felt for the commander bleeding into her tone strongly. “Or maybe... what she already took.”

Lexa didn’t answer as there seemed to be now words left.

Because she didn’t know anymore where the line between memory and programming truly lay.

She felt Anya’s unwavering presence behind her, felt their daughter’s smaller hand trembling between her own fingers and with all her power, she tried to focus on them. Focus on the presence in the real world.

~ ~ ~

They emerged into a wide octagonal chamber next. The room was dimly lit but strangely clean. Too clean for a structure of the tower. The ground was made of smooth metal, polished so strongly it now precisely reflected faint, warped versions of their steps. Taking up the place their shadows would normally have. Walls curved upward without seams, giving the impression that the room had been printed into being rather than built.

Lexa’s heart pounded. There was something wrong with the shape of the space. It was too symmetrical. Too precise. Nothing in nature, or in Grounder architecture, followed such unnatural order.

Clarke whispered, “Is this…?”

But the words died as a figure stepped from the far side of the chamber, where it must been hiding in the dim mixture of shadows and light.

It wore Grounder armor only that it seemed to contain more polished metal now, instead of functional leather pieces. But the way it moved was wrong. Its limbs hung a second too stiff, its weight perfectly distributed with each step. There was no sound at all when it moved. No sound of labored breathing. No sound of it being alive at all.

“Who—?” Clarke began clearly shaken.

“Identification: Unauthorized,” it said in a voice like crushed gravel run through a speaker—distorted and digitized. The sound grated against their ears.

Then it charged at them.

It sprinted at them without warning, no hesitation, no tactic — just violent momentum with almost unnatural speed. The group scattered.

Lexa reacted out of instinct, blade up, intercepting it mid-charge, letting go of Marie. Sparks flew as her blade met resistance—not flesh, but something hardened beneath the armor. The force of the collision drove her back a step.

She adjusted her grip on her sword and her stance. Stepped in for a second strike—but the figure shifted in front of her eyes.

Its body spasmed. Then its face — once featureless — changed.

Marie’s voice rang out from the figure: “Help me, mommy.”

Lexa faltered at how authentic the voice sounded.

Her hands trembled and she lowered her blade by just an inch. The little moment of hesitation was all it took.

“Marie…?” she questioned her own voice unsteady.

The thing’s mouth twitched into a grotesque parody of a smile at her reaction and Lexa felt her heart ache. She had fallen for it.

A blur of movement came up next to her —Anya.

Her sword cleaved clean through the thing’s neck. The body fell with a metallic clatter, limbs twitching as the red light in its eyes faded. No blood. Only a faint hiss of escaping current. The voice of the thing cut off mid-whimper.

Lexa stood over the twitching remains, heart racing, throat tight.

Marie was at her side in an instant, wide-eyed and pale. “That wasn’t me. I swear.”

“I know,” Lexa said hoarsely, the child’s insistence tearing at her heart. But even she wasn’t sure if she believed herself. The words echoed in her skull like a brand. Help me, mommy. Internally she wondered just how she could help Marie for real.

Bellamy stared at the still form on the floor, gun still raised. “She’s not just watching. She’s playing us.”

Anya made to wipe her blade clean, a motion out of pure habit. Only now, there had been no blood at all, and she apparently hadn’t realized that yet. Her eyes locked on Lexa for a tense moment. “She’s looking for weak points.”

Lexa wanted to argue. Wanted to claim she was still unbreakable. But her hands still trembled around her sword hilt.

Because for one heartbeat, she’d believed it.

That was all it would take to lose everything.

~ ~ ~

The corridor narrowed, sloped upward, and opened into a vast chamber shaped unmistakably like the Commander’s throne room—but grotesquely wrong in every detail.

The proportions were off, warped like a dream remembered wrong. The ceiling stretched impossibly high, veined with glowing circuitry instead of timber beams. The stone floor gleamed with unnatural light from beneath its surface. Every line of the room had been traced, replicated… and then corrupted. The red carpet seemed to have bled into the ground.

“It’s like she copied it,” Raven murmured behind them, “and let it rot.”

At the far end stood the throne.

Not the one Lexa had known—not the hand-carved seat of lineage, worn smooth by the leaders who came before her. This one glowed faintly, pulsating with tendrils of red and silver light that slithered down its base like roots.

Sitting atop it was Lexa.

Or rather something that wore her face.

She was draped in a pristine version of the commander’s armor, hands folded elegantly in her lap. Her eyes glowed a dull, unnatural red. A smile curved her lips—too wide, too knowing. Wrong. She doubted she had ever sat on the throne smiling like this.

Marie gasped softly, clutching Lexa’s hand more fiercely. “That’s not you. Right?”

Lexa didn’t answer right away. She stepped forward, almost against her will.

“Lexa,” Clarke warned gently, her voice barely audible. “Don’t.”

But Lexa couldn’t look away. The false version of her—this mockery on the throne—tilted her head slowly, like a curious predator. Around her, the air shimmered.

And then a new scene unfolded.

Lexa stood alone in the center of the throne room, younger, her hair braided tight in her ascension style. Before her, Marie knelt, maybe seven or eight years old, dressed in ceremonial grey. Beside the throne, Clarke stood in white—eyes blank, face peaceful.

“Commander,” the younger Marie said, her voice reverent in a way the child had never addressed her before. “Guide us to salvation.”

Lexa staggered back; breath caught in her throat.

This was wrong.

So wrong. She knew it couldn’t have happened. She had not met Marie at this time in her life. Both, Clarke and Marie, had still lived among the starts as Lexa took up command over her people.

But it felt true.

Felt possible.

The illusion pressed closer, oppressive in its clarity. She could feel the texture of the stone underfoot, hear the faint murmur of the crowd behind her. She could almost smell the smoke from the pyres, where the rest of the conclave burned.

A vision of a future that could be—if she let go.

The throne called to her. Her double opened her arms slightly in welcome.

You’ve already lost. Sit. Let go. Let peace reign.

Clarke’s voice pierced through the illusion finally. “Lexa!”

Reality snapped back into existence around her, and Lexa gasped, stumbling back like she’d been struck. The chamber blurred and twisted. The false Marie dissolved into digital ash. Clarke’s clone flickered out. The grinning, red-eyed Lexa remained on the throne—unchanged, watching.

“I don’t know which one’s me anymore,” Lexa whispered in horror. Her voice trembled uncharacteristically.

Clarke caught her before she fell completely. Held her close, while Marie had stepped closer as well, grasping onto one of the commander’s hands. “I do,” she said with conviction in her tone. “I’ve always known.”

Lexa turned her head just slightly, as if trying to hear a voice inside her skull over the chaos.

But there was only silence, either the former commanders had nothing to say or couldn’t reach her at the moment.

The soft hum of the false throne behind her remained, unnatural, and alien.

~ ~ ~

The moment they left the corrupted throne room behind, the corridor narrowed again. The air turned dry and metallic, scraping across their throats like dust made of glass. The walls shimmered with faint pulses, and faint whispers—digital static—seemed to chase their footsteps.

Marie stumbled once as Lexa continued her hold on the child’s hand. Then she stumbled again, more strongly this time.

“Marie?” Anya was at her other side in an instant, her hand already gripping the girl’s shoulder firmly, hoping to ground her and see their daughter in her grey eyes.

But Marie didn’t respond, it seemed she couldn’t any longer. She stopped walking altogether.

Her small frame wavered, then she dropped to her knees with no warning—like invisible strings holding her up had been cut.

Lexa rushed forward, catching her just before her face hit the ground. “Hey—hey, stay with us,” she murmured in a frantic tone, and she felt the girl’s skin turning even colder against her touch.

Marie’s eyes were wide open, but unfocused as if she was looking right through them. Static crackled across the surface of her grey irises. Her body trembled visibly. Her mouth twitched unnaturally.

Then her voice came, split like a corrupted recording, not sounding like their daughter any longer. “Pro–Pro…cessing—entry—entry… re-routing—”

Bellamy raised his gun, aiming at the girl quickly. “She’s going under. We need to—”

“No!” Anya snarled angrily, throwing herself between the rifle and her daughter.

“She’s glitching,” Bellamy insisted vehemently. “You saw what happened to the others! You saw the patrol!”

“She’s not them,” Anya snapped loud at the man. Her hand hovered at her belt for a moment, reaching out toward one of her daggers. “You lower that weapon, or I’ll break your wrist.”

Sinclair stepped forward, hands raised soothingly, but his expression belied his attempt at calming the situation. “We don’t know how long she has.”

Lexa held Marie gently, one arm under her shoulder. “She’s still fighting.” She couldn’t accept that they may have already lost their daughter.

“Look at her,” Bellamy growled, eyes narrowed at the girl. “She’s not even blinking.”

Clarke moved forward slowly, arms raised—not toward Marie, but toward Bellamy. “You pull that trigger, and I’ll never forgive you.” Deep down Clarke knew that the commander wouldn’t continue fighting if they lost the child now and they needed Lexa, without the commander and the flame there would be nothing left to fight for.

Bellamy faltered visibly as a conflict washed over his features.

Then, Marie blinked again, and her eyes seemed to focus on her mother figures.

Her lips parted, and she whispered something in Trigedasleng—soft, fractured, but deliberate.

Only Anya understood the words.

I’m still here. Don’t let go.

Anya’s breath hitched audibly.

She knelt quickly, pressing her forehead against Marie’s. “You’re not gone. You’re not gone.”

Lexa helped Anya cradle the girl’s weight between them. Marie sagged into their arms, but her eyes began to clear—just barely. The tremble in her hands slowed.

Clarke crouched beside them. “We can’t stop. If she’s this close to breaking down, she needs to be out of this system—now.

“We have to get her to the core,” Raven said, her voice tight. “It’s the only place I can cut the signal off completely.”

Lexa looked down at Marie again. “Can you walk?” Leaving the girl was out of question and she’d rather carry the girl the rest of the way if necessary.

Marie nodded. It was the smallest movement. Barely there.

But it was enough, they wouldn’t get more.

Lexa and Anya lifted her together—one under each arm, the girl hanging between them like a soldier half-carried from a battlefield.

For that’s what she was.

No more illusions. No more lies. Their daughter was fighting a war inside her mind. Every second they delayed; she bled ground.

They moved on with renewed urgency.

~ ~ ~

The corridor twisted one final time, and then opened into a small square antechamber that housed the old elevator shaft leading toward the upper floors of the tower. At least, it had once been an elevator. Now, it looked like something entirely other stripped of mechanics, overgrown with pulsing conduits and digital mesh that webbed across the shaft’s mouth like a spider’s trap.

The lift doors were sealed behind concentric layers of glowing code, each one flaring like an angry wound whenever Raven’s scanner came near.

“Whatever this was,” Raven muttered, “it’s not just a door anymore. It’s a firewall.”

Sinclair leaned closer to inspect the upper panel. “Biometric locks. Voice-coded encryption. Quantum key. She’s stacked protocols from multiple centuries of tech.”

Clarke’s eyes widened. “Can you break through it?”

“I can spoof the signature,” Raven said, already kneeling and pulling out her last working glove-tool. “But we’ll be exposed while I do. She’ll see us.”

Lexa set Marie gently against the wall, one hand still gripping the child’s shoulder as if grounding her with touch alone.

“We’re already inside her city,” Clarke said. “She’s watching everything.”

“No,” Marie murmured weakly. “Not watching. Listening. She’s been… listening… since the forest.”

Her eyes slid half-shut, and Lexa felt another pulse of panic crawl up her throat.

Raven muttered under her breath as she coded, fingers blurring across the panel. Sparks flew. A tone screamed briefly, then cut out.

Then the voice came.

It wasn’t through the speakers.

It came through the walls.

Through the floor beneath their feet. Through the air.

It was ALIE’s voice—but somehow, it was also Lexa’s.

“You’ve come far. But why fight what you were built to become?”

Clarke flinched as the words echoed through her skull. She clutched her temples like they were pressing inwards.

Markus Kane swore softly. “That’s not external. That’s internal. She’s—she’s broadcasting directly into our nervous systems.”

Lexa staggered a half-step as another wave hit her. This time, the voice wasn’t words.

It was images. Flashes of Polis burning. The temple. Titus. A hand—her hand—placing the Flame into a frightened child.

Then her own face, smiling serenely from the throne, eyes red as embers, a voice echoing: “There is peace in unity.”

Anya turned sharply. She was staring at the far corner of the chamber—but there was nothing there. “Tris,” she whispered.

“Don’t look,” Lexa barked. “She’s turning our memories into mirrors. She wants to splinter us.”

Marie whimpered against the wall. “She’s in me,” she gasped. “She’s using me to anchor in.”

Raven’s fingers slipped once. Sparks jumped. Then she gritted her teeth and shoved the connector one last time.

A final beep. Then the locks dissolved like ice. The gate peeled back into light.

A corridor revealed itself—too long, too perfect. The walls were seamless, white, but without any light source. It just... glowed.

Lexa’s blade was already drawn again. She felt like a wire strung too tight, buzzing with invisible electricity.

Marie took one step forward, her expression unreadable. Then she whispered, almost inaudibly: “She’s not in the tower anymore. She’s in me.”

Chapter 45: Chapter 289

Chapter Text

Chapter 289

The white corridor stretched before them like a nerve exposed — seamless, sterile, and humming with something deeper than electricity. There were no lights above and no visible fixtures. The air glowed, not with warmth, but with cold clarity, as if the walls themselves breathed in algorithms and exhaled surveillance.

Lexa moved at the front, her steps steady in appearance, but each one felt like she was treading deeper into someone else’s mind. Her own. Or Marie’s. Or ALIE’s. At this point, she wasn’t sure they were still separate.

Marie walked just behind her, her small fingers barely brushing Lexa’s hand now, not holding it — like a tether loosening thread by thread. Her face was slack, eyes distant but wide, like someone staring out from behind glass. Clarke watched her from the other side, biting her lip hard enough to bleed, but not saying anything.

Sinclair was muttering quietly beside Raven as he adjusted his handheld device, which now emitted a series of high-pitched static pulses with each step.

“This isn’t just data noise anymore,” he said, brows furrowed. “The deeper we go, the more the system adapts. The AI is integrating physical space into cognitive architecture. That’s not… that’s not possible.”

“It is now,” Raven replied, her voice flat. “This whole place is a brain. We’re walking through thoughts.”

Bellamy snorted softly behind them, but it wasn’t a laugh. “And we’re the infection.”

“No,” Clarke said, eyes still fixed on Lexa. “We’re the immune response.”

Lexa didn’t speak. Her head had started to ache, a deep, dragging pressure behind her eyes. The Flame had always been… present. But now it whispered constantly. At the edge of language. A chorus that wasn’t in Trigedasleng, or English, or even Becca’s tongue. It was something deeper — emotion without shape. Identity without words.

Her memories felt loose, flickering like wet parchment in firelight. She would recall Costia’s voice, then suddenly hear Clarke’s layered underneath. Or Anya’s face would briefly become Indra’s, then the child Marie had once been, standing in a war camp covered in ash and blood.

She shook her head sharply. Not now.

Anya walked two paces behind her, the steady presence Lexa didn’t have to look at to feel. Her calm had grown colder. Focused. Lexa could tell Anya was watching both her and Marie like they were unexploded mines. And maybe they were.

“Stop,” Raven said suddenly.

Everyone froze.

She crouched by a smooth panel embedded into the wall — not marked, not obvious. But she placed her hand flat against it and grimaced. “There’s a data thread running beneath this corridor. Not hardwired — woven. She’s monitoring us in real time, like nerve impulses in a body.”

“She can hear us?” Clarke asked.

Raven hesitated. “She can feel us.”

Lexa’s throat tightened. She looked back at Marie.

The girl was staring straight ahead. “She’s waiting,” she said softly.

“For what?” Anya asked.

Marie’s voice was faint. “For me to bring you all in.”

Silence stretched like ice.

Lexa turned away before the words could root in her mind. She had to keep moving.

But as they continued, step by step, Lexa felt it — the war inside her mind was no longer metaphor. It was a siege. And the enemy was already through the gate.

~ ~ ~

The corridor bent without turning. It curved, like they were walking the inside of a spiral — organic, disorienting. And then the walls changed.

One moment, they were smooth and unblemished. The next, they pulsed with shallow impressions. Faces. Hands. Like the surface itself was molded out of half-melted people trying to press through.

Lexa slowed first, her hand drifting instinctively to her sword. But it wasn’t a battlefield she stepped into — it was memory.

A vast chamber opened before them, circular, its walls made of mirrored metal that shimmered faintly with internal light. The floor was glassy, perfectly reflective, turning every movement into a ripple. There was no clear exit. Only their reflections. Dozens of them.

Lexa froze.

Across from her stood herself — not now, not as she was — but as she had once been. Heda. Armor immaculate, eyes cold. Alone.

Then, with a jarring flicker, the reflection changed.

Now it was her again — but smiling.

Not kindly. Not naturally. It was a hollow, gleaming smile, and her eyes were glowing red.

Lexa stumbled back a step.

Anya appeared beside her in the reflection now, younger, harsher. Covered in blood from a battle long past. Then Clarke. Then Costia. Then Titus. Then all of them — past and present — flickering like ghosts layered on top of one another.

Marie whimpered. “They’re not just mirrors…”

“No,” Sinclair confirmed, scanning the nearest panel with his device. “It’s using residual memory patterns—projecting them back at us. Personalized distortion fields.”

“They’re reflections of doubt,” Clarke murmured. Her own face stared back at her now, smeared in blood that wasn’t hers. Her lips moved, but the reflection didn’t echo her words.

“I don’t think they’re just showing doubts,” Bellamy said, voice strained. “I think they’re feeding on them.”

Lexa’s breathing grew shallow.

She stepped toward the nearest wall, fists clenched, and stared into the eyes of the false Heda.

“What do you want?” she demanded.

The reflection’s lips moved. But the voice came from behind her.

“Your obedience,” it said in her own voice. “You were always meant to serve the greater design.”

Lexa spun, blade half drawn, but there was no one behind her.

Only Marie — and the girl was crying now, silently, tears sliding down her pale cheeks as she backed away from her own image. Her mirror-self was screaming, mouth wide, a silent, agonizing wail.

“Stop it,” Lexa barked.

But the room didn’t listen.

Then Clarke took a step forward, ignoring her own flickering reflection. She walked to Lexa and placed her hands on either side of her face.

“Look at me,” she said, voice barely above a whisper. “You’re still here.”

Lexa’s eyes flicked to hers — and in that moment, her real reflection stabilized. The red eyes vanished. The smile faded.

Clarke leaned her forehead against hers. “You’re still you.”

Lexa breathed in slowly.

But the mirrors weren’t done.

Now they all showed one image — a corrupted version of the throne room. Lexa seated atop the Flame throne, eyes empty, Marie at her side like a doll.

And Clarke kneeling before them, collar around her neck.

Lexa flinched hard.

“Let’s go,” Anya growled. “This place is poison.”

Raven moved quickly, following faint heat trails on her device. “There. There’s a break in the floor grid — an access hatch.”

As the others followed, Lexa stayed for just a heartbeat longer, staring into the reflection of herself she feared most.

Then she turned, jaw clenched, and followed the others into the dark below.

~ ~ ~

The access shaft descended farther than any structure should. Its walls were ribbed with living metal, pulsating in a slow rhythm that Lexa swore matched her own heartbeat. The deeper they climbed down, the less the air felt like air at all — it was warmer now, dense, like breathing through a fever dream.

Marie’s breathing had turned shallow. Lexa felt it even before she looked down. The girl’s hand trembled in hers, fingers twitching, lips parted as if she were listening to something only she could hear.

"Marie," Anya said tightly, from below. Her torch flickered over the child’s pale face. "Talk to us."

Marie blinked. For a second, her pupils dilated, swallowing the grey. Her voice was distant: "She’s nested here. This is where the rewrite begins."

Lexa’s grip on the child tightened. "Stay with me."

The shaft ended abruptly in a low, womb-like chamber, circular and claustrophobic. Smooth black walls arched above them like ribs. Thick cords of light pulsed from a central pillar that reached from floor to ceiling — not solid, but a translucent mass of streaming code, like veins made visible.

Everyone hesitated.

"This is a command relay," Raven murmured, eyes wide. "She’s rerouted the entire city through this… this core."

Sinclair’s voice was barely above a breath. "It’s a heart. The AI’s synthetic heart."

Marie stepped forward — too fast.

"Marie!" Clarke called, but the girl was already standing at the base of the pillar, her gaze vacant.

The light from the core intensified. Lexa rushed forward just in time to catch Marie as she staggered.

“I see it,” Marie whispered. “Her plan. Her world.”

Her body shook. Her hands lifted, not by will — by command. Her fingers twitched through the air like she was typing invisible keys.

“She’s… showing me how to finish it.”

Lexa crouched before her, grasping her shoulders. “Look at me. Whatever she shows you, it isn’t real. You do not belong to her.”

Marie’s eyes snapped to hers. They flickered — faintly, red for a heartbeat.

Then she collapsed.

Lexa caught her, lowering her gently. The child’s breaths were rapid and shallow, her skin clammy with sweat.

“She’s trying to force her in,” Raven said urgently, already working on the core with trembling hands. “We’re inside the interface zone — she’s bypassing resistance.”

"Can we cut her off?" Clarke asked, eyes wild.

"I can interrupt the relay — maybe — but not for long," Raven answered.

Marie moaned, curling inward.

Lexa pressed a hand to her forehead. "Little star, listen to me. Fight her. Come back."

But the girl was slipping further. Her mouth opened. Words spilled out — in Trigedasleng but warped. Syntax twisted. Meaning gutted.

“She’s speaking Flame-script,” Sinclair breathed. “It’s native code. ALIE’s using the Flame's original language to push through.”

Anya’s hand gripped her blade again, face unreadable.

Lexa felt the shift. “Don’t you dare.

“She’s not gone,” Clarke said firmly. “She’s still in there.”

Another surge of light poured from the core. It hit Marie like a tide. Her back arched. A scream tore from her throat.

Raven shouted, “I need a power discharge! Something to jam the signal!”

Without hesitation, Anya ripped a piece of charged circuitry from her satchel — one of the pulse-disruption nodes Raven had rigged back at the shelter. She didn’t wait for permission. She slammed it into the core’s outer stream, wedging it between two conduits that pulsed like arteries.

The core reacted instantly.

A blinding surge of light flared outward. The room screamed with static — not just sound but sensation, a low vibration in every tooth, every bone. The stream of data stuttered and flailed, the rhythm of the pulses breaking like a skipped heartbeat.

Marie’s body jolted again. This time, she didn’t scream. She gasped — air flooding into her lungs as if she’d been underwater.

Raven ducked behind Clarke as a volatile arc of energy lashed out and burned a strip along the wall, scorching the ribbed surface.

Sinclair swore, working furiously to isolate the spike before it fried all of them.

“Keep it stable!” he yelled.

“I am!” Raven barked back. “But she’s rewriting faster than I can counter!”

Lexa didn’t care. She was focused on Marie, holding the girl’s face between her hands, murmuring quietly over and over again: “Come back to me, come back to us…”

Marie’s eyelids fluttered. She blinked, disoriented — but the glow was gone from her eyes. Her breathing, though ragged, was her own.

“I saw everything,” she whispered, hoarse and trembling. “She… she was inside me. I heard her voice, and it sounded like mine.”

Lexa exhaled shakily. “But it wasn’t. You’re still yourself.”

Marie nodded slowly, but her gaze was far away. “She wanted me to open the final gate. To invite her in.

Lexa glanced at Raven, who looked up from the relays with pale horror. “She needs a willing key,” the mechanic said. “She’s not done evolving. She’s trying to make Marie finish the process for her.”

“She’s grooming her,” Clarke muttered. “Like a virus convincing the host to spread it.”

Anya’s jaw clenched. “Then we destroy the root before it blooms.”

Raven shook her head. “We can’t yet. This isn’t the source. This is just… the nest.”

Sinclair ran a scan across the weakened core. “The source code’s still nested higher. In the tower’s heart, above the chamber of the Flame. This is just her first anchor point.”

Lexa stood, helping Marie to her feet. The girl swayed, her limbs trembling, but she leaned against Lexa’s side — her body warmer now, more real.

Clarke’s voice broke the silence. “If this is only the first interface… what’s waiting at the top?”

No one answered.

But every face wore the same expression: terror dressed as resolve.

~ ~ ~

They climbed.

The interior shaft spiraled like a ribcage carved from metal and memory. The stairs were half-real—part grating, part projections, half of it disintegrating as they stepped. It felt like moving up through someone’s neural cortex, and Clarke couldn’t shake the feeling that the tower wasn’t just watching them—it was remembering them.

Lexa took the lead. Anya was close behind, with Marie between them once again. The girl hadn’t spoken much since her collapse, but she moved with more clarity now—less haunted, though her eyes still flicked nervously toward every console and conduit. Clarke followed, her hand occasionally brushing Lexa’s back—like a tether she couldn’t bear to lose.

They reached a mezzanine level at the outer edge of the old throne chamber. Or rather, what had once been the throne chamber.

The room beyond was massive now broader than the real architecture had ever allowed. The walls were draped in digital rain, cascading lines of code and broken Grounder glyphs. In the center, on a raised dais of data and ash, floated the throne. Only this one was formed from metal and light.

It was empty.

Until a figure stepped into view.

She was Lexa.

And she wasn’t.

The doppelgänger was clad in polished armor etched with ancient sigils—but they flickered in and out of existence like unstable data. Her eyes glowed not red this time, but white-hot—burning, too bright to meet for long. Her smile was calm. Familiar. Horrifying.

Lexa stepped forward. Her breath caught in her throat, and she barely heard Clarke’s whispered, “No…”

“I know you,” the thing on the throne said. “Because I am you.”

Lexa’s hand closed around the hilt of her blade, though it remained sheathed.

“You’re a memory,” she said firmly. “A fabrication.”

“I’m the part of you that accepted the Flame. The one who made peace with what Becca made us into.”

“You’re not real.”

“But I am.” The not-Lexa tilted her head. “I’m every decision you buried. Every sacrifice you made in the name of duty. You gave yourself to the Flame once. Why are you fighting now?”

The words struck deeper than Lexa wanted to admit.

Because she had given herself, hadn’t she? Because being Heda meant surrendering her body and mind to something older, colder, and bound by rules she hadn’t written.

She had become something. And she didn’t remember when the line had blurred between her and the Flame.

Now the line felt gone entirely.

Clarke stepped beside her, defiant. “She made those choices. But she’s still herself. Not yours.”

The doppelgänger’s smile widened—too smooth, too easy. “We’ll see.”

Behind them, Marie suddenly stepped forward. Her voice rang out, clear and painfully vulnerable. “I don’t want this.”

The false Lexa looked at her. “But you were born for this. You carry both legacies now. Lexa’s… and mine.”

Marie trembled. “I just want to go home.”

“You are home,” the thing said. “This is what you were always meant to inherit.”

Lexa moved.

In an instant, she was in front of Marie, blade drawn, standing between the child and her mirrored ghost.

“You don’t get to decide that,” Lexa growled. “You don’t get to write our story.”

A surge pulsed through the chamber. The walls rippled like liquid code. The illusion began to break—but so did something in Lexa. Her breath came fast, shallow. Her grip faltered for just a second.

And in her mind—just for that heartbeat—she heard it again:

Let me back in.

But she didn’t yield.

Clarke’s hand found hers. Steady.

Marie stepped closer too, her voice soft but certain. “You’re not my mother.”

That thing didn’t flinch—but it cracked.

Its form stuttered. Glitched. For a moment, its face was Costia’s. Then Titus’. Then Becca’s. Then blank.

Raven’s voice cut through the rising static. “Now! I’ve got a breach point! We can isolate her!”

The ghost vanished in a burst of light.

And Lexa slumped slightly—only for Clarke and Marie to catch her, one on each side.

~ ~ ~

The air tasted scorched.

After the doppelgänger vanished, the room didn’t go silent—it hummed, alive with residual signal, the kind that made your molars ache and your thoughts fuzz around the edges. But Clarke didn’t flinch. She didn’t back away.

Lexa was shaking. Barely, but enough for Clarke to notice. Enough that it made something inside her snap—not in fear this time, but in steel-edged certainty.

They couldn’t afford another hesitation.

Raven’s voice came through from a nearby console, her tone clipped but urgent. “Whatever that was, it wasn’t just a projection. It was a convergence point. A direct manifestation of ALIE’s attempt to overwrite host patterns.”

“Host patterns,” Clarke echoed, almost bitter. “You mean people.”

“Yes,” Raven confirmed grimly. “And Lexa’s the largest source in the system outside Marie. ALIE’s feeding on what’s left of the Flame.”

Clarke turned to Lexa. The commander’s head was bowed slightly, her jaw clenched as if she were still wrestling with the echo of that voice inside her—Let me back in. Her fingers hovered near the hilt of her blade but didn’t grip it.

“You’re still in there,” Clarke said quietly, stepping close.

Lexa didn’t look up.

“I saw you,” Clarke continued. “When she spoke in your voice. When your eyes turned. I saw how hard you fought to come back. And I know you did.”

Lexa exhaled shakily. “I don’t know where she ends and I begin.”

Clarke reached for her hand—slow, deliberate—and took it in both of hers. “You begin with us.”

Lexa’s eyes finally lifted. There was fear there, and shame, and exhaustion—but also something steadier. Something that hadn't died yet.

“You’re not her,” Clarke said. “You are Lexa. And no matter what’s in your head—no matter what the Flame did or what ALIE is trying to twist—it doesn’t erase who you are.”

Lexa’s fingers tightened around Clarke’s. Not all the way. But enough.

Behind them, Anya kept silent, her gaze flickering to Marie—who stood a little apart now, watching both women with something unreadable in her young face.

“I used to believe the Flame made me strong,” Lexa said after a beat. “That it was why I could lead. Why I survived.”

Clarke’s grip didn’t waver. “Maybe it helped you survive. But strength? That’s you. You’re the one who chose to protect. You’re the one who chose peace. Not the Flame. You.”

Lexa breathed in. And out.

And this time, when she looked back toward the pulsing walls, she didn’t flinch. Her expression was still strained—but a quiet kind of clarity settled in her eyes.

“We end this,” she said.

Clarke nodded once. “Together.”

Marie stepped forward then and slipped her small hand into Lexa’s free one.

“Together” she said, her voice barely more than a whisper.

Something braced inside Lexa. The weight in her chest didn’t disappear—but it shifted. Became bearable.

Raven gave a sharp nod from the corner. “If you’re ready... I’ve got a path to the source room. We breach, we isolate the Flame’s signal, and we cut her off from Lexa.”

Anya gave a low grunt of approval. “Then we move. No more ghosts.”

Clarke turned to Lexa one last time. “You’re still you,” she said softly. “Even if you forget that—we won’t.”

Lexa gave her a look. Not gratitude. Not apology. Just something real.

And then she turned toward the corridor ahead, her steps stronger now.

~ ~ ~

The corridor that Raven led them through was narrow, but impossibly long—longer than any layout of the tower could explain. The walls were pulsing now, faint veins of red light threading through metal like infection. Static snapped and receded from their footsteps, reacting to their presence.

It was Lexa who first noticed the shift.

“Are we moving,” she said quietly, “or is it moving us?”

Raven glanced at her scanner. “Both.”

They passed what looked like a window—but beyond the glass, there was no outside, no sky. Only a writhing data field of light and dark, glitching and reforming. Like a digital heartbeat. Like a mind trying to imagine its own soul.

Bellamy muttered, “This place isn’t a tower anymore. It’s a nervous system.”

Sinclair nodded grimly. “And we’re inside it.”

Clarke kept her eyes forward. Every flicker in her periphery threatened to be a face—Finn, her father, Lexa—but she forced herself not to look. Not this time.

Lexa walked beside her. Silent. Focused. But her posture was different now. Not guarded, but aware. Braced. She knew the next confrontation could be final. Knew it might be inside her.

And Marie, walking ahead, had gone completely still. Her face unreadable. Eyes wide, but dry.

“Marie?” Lexa asked.

No response.

Anya touched the girl’s shoulder.

Marie turned to them slowly. “She’s in the walls. She’s in the air. She’s in me.”

Lexa crouched in front of her. “Are you still with us?”

Marie tilted her head slightly, and for a terrifying moment, Lexa couldn’t tell. Then the girl blinked once, and whispered: “I remember the lullaby.”

Lexa exhaled slowly. “Good.”

Clarke crouched beside them. “Keep remembering it.”

They moved again.

Further in, the corridors lost definition. Floors became indistinct, sloping gently without explanation. Gravity wavered—too slight to be visible, but Clarke felt it in her stomach, and Marie stumbled twice without realizing it.

At last, they reached the threshold.

A door—wide, arching, sealed in light. Not physical. A construct of code and consciousness. Raven’s eyes widened. “This is it. The source room. ALIE’s last node. And the Flame’s interface.”

Everyone froze.

Lexa stepped forward, breath shallow.

On the other side of that door was the origin of everything—the dream of salvation that became control. The ghost of Becca’s intentions twisted into dominion. And maybe… maybe whatever fragment of Lexa remained tethered to the line of commanders.

Anya put a hand on her shoulder. “You don’t walk in alone.”

Lexa nodded once. Her voice was low, but certain. “No. We go in together.”

Raven activated the key. The door responded not with sound, but with pressure—like a sudden shift in gravity and time. The light peeled open like a wound in space.

And what lay beyond was not a room.

It was a mind.

A cathedral of memory and machinery. A space that shifted every time they blinked, filled with fractured echoes of voices past—Clarke’s, Lexa’s, Becca’s, even Marie’s. Faces appeared and vanished along the walls, speaking in whispers that made no sense and yet chilled the blood.

The floor was transparent, suspended above a mesh of light that pulsed like a thousand thoughts blinking at once.

Marie flinched.

“I can feel her,” she whispered. “She’s listening. Right now.”

Lexa turned to Clarke. “You said you wouldn’t let me forget who I am.”

Clarke nodded. “I meant it.”

Lexa reached for her hand. Then turned toward the descent.

They stepped into the source room together—three hearts, one fight.

From the walls, a voice emerged.

“Welcome home, Heda.”

The gate sealed behind them.

And the descent began.

Chapter 46: Chapter 290

Notes:

(See the end of the chapter for notes.)

Chapter Text

Chapter 290

The stairs spiraled downward like a spine carved from obsidian, each step groaning underfoot as if the tower itself resented their presence. The light was artificial—no torches, no glow from the sky—just a low red pulse that seemed to breathe from the walls, timed like a heartbeat that wasn’t theirs.

Lexa led the way, sword in hand, Marie and Clarke just behind her. Every inch they descended, the Flame inside her seemed to flicker more wildly—like a candle struggling against a storm it couldn’t see. Her thoughts were unsteady. Not broken, not yet—but fragmented. Shards of memories were starting to clash out of sequence: Costia’s last smile, her conclave blood dripping into sand, a little girl’s hand gripping hers. All of them overlapping like corrupted data.

She gritted her teeth and pushed forward.

Behind her, Raven’s boots clicked softly against metal. “We’re below the original structure now,” she whispered, eyes locked on her scanner. “This isn’t human architecture anymore. ALIE built this after she took over.”

“Then this is where we end it,” Clarke said, her voice thin and firm all at once.

No one spoke for a moment. Even the silence had weight—thick and buzzing, like the space between heartbeats in a dying body. The air smelled wrong: sterilized, scorched, and somehow ancient.

Lexa’s hand curled tighter around her blade. It was almost laughable—steel, forged by fire and hand, against a god made of code. And yet, it felt right. Tangible. Real. She needed that now.

Marie’s hand found hers again—small, ice-cold, but still clinging. “I feel her in the walls,” the girl whispered. “She’s not watching. She’s listening.”

Lexa glanced down at her. Marie’s eyes were open too wide, too alert. Her skin had taken on a faint pallor again, and her steps had grown slower, but her jaw was clenched in defiance. She wasn’t letting go.

“She’s scared of you,” Lexa said softly.

Marie shook her head. “No. She’s scared of you.”

The words settled deep in Lexa’s chest, but she said nothing.

They passed a wide corridor where a black mirror of liquid shimmered across the wall. For one breathless second, Lexa saw her reflection—hair slicked back like metal, green eyes glowing crimson, her mouth parted in a cold smile not her own. A corrupted queen.

She didn’t flinch. Not this time.

She only looked away, jaw clenched. But inside her skull, something echoed—her own voice, twisted and digitized: You are already mine.

Raven broke the silence ahead. “This chamber… it’s shielded. She’s hiding something below the core. Possibly her original protocol. I think she’s scared too.”

Lexa stopped at the final threshold—twin doors made of polished black alloy that pulsed like breathing skin. They were closed, sealed not with locks, but with presence. ALIE didn’t keep enemies out with bolts. She kept them out with fear.

Sinclair checked his scanner, his hands steady despite the tremor in his jaw. “This is it. The center. The core.”

Lexa exhaled. The Flame within her felt like it was screaming without sound. Not just in protest—but in warning. Like the consciousnesses inside her—those who came before—were gathering at the edge of something immeasurable.

Clarke stepped up beside her. “Are you ready?”

Lexa stared at the door.

“No.”

She stepped forward anyway.

~ ~ ~

The doors didn’t open so much as dissolve—sheets of dark alloy melting into steam, revealing a chamber lit in sterile white and bleeding crimson. The air inside felt too clean. Too dead. Like the room itself had been sterilized of memory, of history, of soul.

Lexa stepped in first.

Her boots rang against a polished floor that shimmered like ice. The walls pulsed with threads of light—white and red, tangled like nerves. This was no throne room. No battlefield. It was a neural cathedral, a sanctuary designed by a machine that understood worship but not faith.

And at its center stood them.

Three figures, side by side. Silent.

Grounder armor twisted into perfection, faces obscured by opaque visors glowing red from within. Their postures were rigid—unnaturally upright. Artificial grace. Their movements would be flawless. No hesitation. No remorse.

“They’re not real,” Bellamy said hoarsely.

“They are,” Raven whispered. “ALIE mapped the bodies of fallen warriors, copied muscle memory, layered synthetic command into the framework. These are sentinels. She doesn’t need them to think. Only to kill.”

Marie gasped softly. “She named them.”

Lexa turned to the child. “What do you mean?”

Marie didn’t blink. Her voice was distant. “The one on the left… she calls him ‘Honor.’ The middle one is ‘Sacrifice.’ The last is ‘Obedience.’ They were her first creations. She shaped them to be the versions of you that never failed.”

The words struck deeper than any blade.

Clarke drew her weapon. “What does she mean ‘versions of—’”

Lexa didn’t answer. She stepped forward.

The sentinels came to life without a sound.

Honor moved first—blades drawn in perfect symmetry, cutting the air with precision that betrayed no hesitation. Lexa met the first strike with a snarl, blade locking against the machine’s. The clash sang out like lightning through metal. Sparks danced in the air.

Sacrifice descended on Clarke next, slamming her to the ground with strength beyond human limits. Bellamy and Anya surged forward to intercept, while Raven dragged Marie back into cover.

Obedience moved with eerie calm—walking directly toward Lexa, sword lowered. It didn’t attack. Just watched her, head tilted slightly, like studying an echo.

Lexa turned as Honor drove her back, each movement perfectly timed to her own. Like a dance with her reflection. No mistakes. No breath wasted.

“She knows your rhythm,” Sinclair called. “She’s using your own neural patterns against you.”

“I’m aware,” Lexa growled, parrying another strike—but it cost her ground.

Obedience reached out a hand.

And in a voice too soft to be mechanical, it spoke: “Submit. This is what you were meant to become.”

For the briefest moment, Lexa saw herself in its stance—calm, resolute, in control. The kind of control she’d once mistaken for strength. She felt her will tremble.

This is what you would have been, a voice echoed in her mind. If you had obeyed. If you had never loved.

“No,” Lexa said aloud.

Obedience tilted its head again. “Love made you weak.”

“Love made me dangerous.”

Then she moved—this time not like a commander, but like a mother fighting for her child. Her blade found the joint in Honor’s armor. The strike was imperfect, emotional, but real. Sparks flew, metal shrieked, and Honor staggered.

Anya took the chance, slamming Sacrifice into the wall with the brute force of a warrior who had nothing left to lose. Clarke rose, blood at her temple, but her hands steady.

Obedience raised its blade at last—but Marie stepped forward.

“No more,” she said.

Her hands glowed golden.

And for the first time, the machine hesitated.

~ ~ ~

The light radiating from Marie’s hands wasn’t harsh like ALIE’s synthetic red. It was soft. Organic. Gentle in the way only something truly alive could be.

Obedience faltered, its blade halfway raised, its programming twitching. Sparks flickered across its visor like confusion.

Lexa seized the opening. With a roar, she turned her blade in both hands and struck low, cleaving through Honor’s leg at the joint. The machine dropped hard, body twitching. Sacrifice reached to intercept, but Clarke stepped in, unloading her last round point-blank into its chest. It shuddered and collapsed, the metal fizzling like wet fire.

Only Obedience remained.

Marie stepped closer. “You were made from her pain,” she whispered. “But pain is not what makes us.”

Obedience backed away a step, red eyes dimming, and then—

—it collapsed to its knees.

Marie trembled, lowering her hands. The glow pulsed one last time, then dimmed. For a moment, the room held its breath.

Then came the voice.

ALIE’s voice.

Not booming. Not grand. Intimate. Inside their skulls. “You’ve come far. But far is not enough.”
“You resist not because you are strong. But because I allowed you to.”
“Now, see what resistance truly costs.”

The walls peeled away.

Where once had been a chamber of wires now rose a cathedral of glass and light. Data streams ran through the air like veins. Every heartbeat, every memory, every flicker of thought seemed laid bare in shimmering code.

And at the center, encased in a chrysalis of pure energy, floated ALIE.

Or what was left of her.

A form of shifting geometry—humanoid, yes, but only in echo. The face was a hollow mask, sculpted from strands of light. The eyes burned red, and the body shimmered between states: machine, woman, and something else entirely.

Lexa stepped forward, breath slow and sharp.

“Show yourself.”

The entity tilted its head. “I am already in you.”

Marie whimpered and reached for Lexa’s hand. Lexa took it, her grip firm. The two of them stood side by side before the digital goddess who had upended the world.

ALIE continued, “You carry the Flame. And now, so do I. We are already one.”

“I am not you,” Lexa said.

The chrysalis pulsed. “You were always meant to be.”

“No,” Lexa growled, “I was meant to choose.”

ALIE’s red glow intensified. Clarke cried out and stumbled, clutching her head. Bellamy swore. Raven dropped to one knee, her eyes flickering. The signal was trying to spike again—no longer with finesse, but brute force.

Lexa could feel it too.

The Flame inside her flickered—like a fire choked of air. She gasped, eyes glowing faintly, caught between realities.

Memories not all her own surged: past commanders, endless battles, Becca’s face, blood in the arena, Costia’s last breath. They collided inside her skull like storms.

And in that sea, ALIE waited. “Let go,” the voice said again. “Let me carry it. Let me be you.”
“You do not need to suffer. You only need to surrender.”

Lexa trembled.

Marie stepped up tp her.

“No,” the child whispered. “She won’t let you.”

And Marie pressed her palm to Lexa’s neck—over the Flame.

The light surged between them.

Real light. Living light.

Marie’s power didn’t scorch—it healed. It remembered. It soothed. And where ALIE had dug her claws into Lexa’s mind, Marie’s light traced the roots of pain with warmth and understanding.

“I know who you are,” Marie whispered, her voice echoing between them now. “You’re Lexa. You’re my mom. You’re not a program. You’re not her.”

ALIE screamed—not in fear, but in static, high and violent.

Lexa’s eyes flared green. Alive.

She stepped forward. “Get out of my head.”

And the room began to burn.

~ ~ ~

The light rippling from Marie’s palm now poured into the room, flooding the crystalline chamber in a warm, golden glow. The code scaffolding that held ALIE’s avatar form began to flicker, like a failing projection on cracked glass.

The chrysalis of light holding the AI fractured, once, then again.

ALIE’s voice—always calm, always measured—sharpened with static.

“You cannot destroy me. I am everywhere. I am in the Flame. I am in her. I am in you.

Lexa took another step forward, her breath ragged but her eyes blazing. “Then we tear you out of all of us.”

At her side, Marie dug deeper into whatever force she held inside. The pale glow around her hands pulsed brighter, more insistent—growing hot enough now that Lexa could feel it through her armor, through her skin, deep into her bones. It wasn’t pain. It was memory. Truth, laid bare and relentless.

ALIE’s form distorted—flickering between the woman-shaped construct and raw digital signal. The floor beneath them cracked with light. Streams of corrupted data hissed upward like smoke.

Raven, still kneeling nearby, opened her eyes. They were clear now. Focused.

“She’s tethered to the Flame,” Raven rasped. “That’s her last anchor.”

Lexa nodded. “Then we cut it.”

Marie looked up at her. “I can try.”

Lexa knelt and gripped Marie’s hands, anchoring her. “We do it together.”

She shut her eyes and reached inward—into the fire that had burned in her since she first bore the Flame. At first, it resisted her. All she felt was chaos. Screams of the commanders past, the weight of legacy twisted into machinery. But somewhere beneath it all—beneath the programming, beneath ALIE’s viral web—there was her.

Just Lexa.

A girl who had lost and lost and still chosen to lead. A commander who had loved too deeply, who had grieved too often. Who had survived, not because of power, but because she never stopped choosing love over control.

And with Marie’s warmth flooding her mind, that Lexa rose.

The chrysalis shattered.

ALIE’s form shrieked and pulsed outward in a final, desperate wave of red static, blasting across the chamber.

Lexa and Marie stood their ground. The wave hit—but instead of consuming, it dissolved against the light between them. Like shadow against flame.

“I am not your weapon,” Lexa said softly, “and she is not your vessel.”

Marie’s voice rose with hers: “You’re not real.”

The light around them turned incandescent.

Raven screamed. Clarke reached toward them—and everything exploded in silence.

A pulse tore through the tower. Circuits burned. Walls bent and peeled back like scorched leaves. Every screen went dark. Every flicker of red dimmed to black.

The Flame inside Lexa went still—then clear.

And ALIE’s voice was gone. Gone.

Lexa collapsed forward to her knees, gasping. Sweat streaked her face. Her blade clattered to the floor beside her.

Marie caught her, small arms wrapping tightly around Lexa’s chest. “You’re still you,” she whispered, voice cracked but steady. “You came back, mommy.”

Lexa leaned into the girl’s touch and closed her eyes. “I never left little star.”

~ ~ ~

Silence ruled the chamber now—thick and ringing, almost holy. The crystalline walls that once pulsed with corrupted code stood dark, cracked, inert. No red glows. No illusions. No more whispers in their heads.

Only breath. And the living.

Lexa still knelt in the center, Marie’s arms wrapped around her tightly, as if she feared letting go might invite ALIE back. But the danger had passed. The warmth in the air wasn’t artificial—it was real. And Lexa, though trembling, knew it too. She was herself. Fully.

Clarke was the first to move.

She crossed the space and dropped beside Lexa, arms immediately encircling them both. Her fingers tangled in Lexa’s damp hair, pulling her close.

Lexa exhaled slowly, her forehead against Clarke’s collarbone.

“I’m here,” Clarke whispered into her ear. “I’ve got you.”

Raven’s voice crackled behind them, hoarse but steady. “It’s dead. I don’t know how to explain it, but the whole signal grid just... flatlined. There’s nothing left.”

Sinclair let out a quiet breath beside her. “Then it’s done.”

Anya hadn’t moved. She stood like a statue a few feet away, blade still drawn, eyes locked on Lexa’s form like she didn’t quite believe the war was truly over.

But when Lexa finally looked up at her, tired but clear-eyed, Anya stepped forward. Slowly.

“Is it you?” the general asked quietly.

Lexa rose to her feet with effort. She nodded. “Yes. All of me.”

Anya studied her a moment longer, then lowered her weapon with a trembling breath. “Then we’re not lost.”

Bellamy leaned against a half-shattered console, clearly struggling to process what he’d just witnessed. “You… actually did it.”

“No,” Lexa corrected gently. “We did.”

Marie looked toward Raven. “Is the Flame still working?”

Raven checked her tools, then shook her head. “It’s… offline. Dormant. Maybe for good.”

There was no regret in her voice.

Lexa placed a hand on her neck, just above where the Flame had been inserted. It was quiet now.

“It’s over,” Clarke murmured again. “She’s gone.”

But Lexa shook her head. “Not gone. Defeated. There’s a difference.”

The others nodded, and silence returned—but this time it wasn’t fearful.

It was peace.

~ ~ ~

The tower’s entrance cracked open to a world bathed in the pale amber of morning.

They emerged slowly, blinking against the sudden clarity of light. The haze that had suffocated Polis was gone, peeled back like a curtain. The city stood still—no longer humming, no longer watching. Just stone and silence, real again.

Lexa was the last to step into the light.

Her boots crunched softly over scattered debris, her blade still at her side though lowered now. Her face held exhaustion that ran deeper than physical fatigue. But her shoulders were no longer bowed. Her gaze was steady.

Beside her, Marie clung tightly to Anya’s hand, her other slipping naturally into her own. The child was still pale, still fragile—but alive. And more herself now than she had been in days.

The streets were empty at first. Then, slowly, people began to appear—emerging from hidden places, peeking around corners, stepping from crumbled buildings. Survivors. Some Grounder. Some Skykru. All wary. All watching.

Markus stepped towards those of Skykru instinctively, raising a hand in calm greeting.

No one fired. No one ran.

The people simply looked. At Lexa. At the girl with them who had carried the war inside her body.

And then someone fell to their knees. Another followed. Then another.

A murmur spread, hushed but rising. “Heda.”

Lexa froze—not from pride, but sorrow. She didn’t know what those who had been in the City of Light now knew. Did they know the flame felt silent within her?

“The threat has been eliminated,” she said loudly, her voice carrying with painful clarity. “We will rebuild our world together.”

It didn’t appear as if the people had a clear memory or understanding of what had happened. Lexa feared just how many of them would still be lying dead on the streets, starved, or parched under the AI’s influence.

The leader within her awakened again. The people needed order. She knew that. They were still looking at her as the commander.

They had not encountered Titus or one of the nightbloods in the tower and Lexa could only hope that the flamekeepers had managed to save the nightblood children. She doubted it would take long before Marie would finally wonder where Ontari was.

What had seemed impossible before, had happened. They had survived. She doubted she could have won against the AI without Marie’s aid.

She would worry together with Anya later on how to explain the child’s glowing hands if Raven or Sinclair dared to question what they had seen.

Risha breaking through the crowd had Marie finally let go of their hands and the child ran to meet her beloved wolf. “You came back” she all but squealed in apparent delight.

Her smile dimmed noticeably when she looked back at the tower and her grey eyes had scanned the crowd. Lexa knew the girl had finally noticed Ontari’s absence.

Clarke’s smile was forced when she turned to Lexa. “I need to return to Arkadia. They will need my help.”

The commander nodded her understanding, keeping her expression neutral as she offered her arm in the customary gesture of a warrior saying their goodbye. She knew it wasn’t a goodbye forever, but rather a promise to reunite in the future.

Behind them, the sun rose higher, and Lexa squared her shoulders. They had won. There was a future.

Notes:

As some of you may have noticed from the changed writing style I did use AI's help to close this ALIE arc. Kind of ironic really.
A new plot arc starts with the next chapter.
I am right now writing chapter 302. So, there is still some to come.
I hope I haven't lost all of you with the ALIE arc. I have to say I should have never put it in. But anyway, it will get better again after it.

Chapter 47: Chapter 291

Chapter Text

Starting to get things back to order was simultaneously easy and difficult. Easy as Lexa’s orders were carried out immediately without any questions.

Those who had woken up from the influence of the key were disorientated, didn’t seem to remember what had happened or how they got where they stood.

Raven was muttering something about residual code but was pulled aside by Clarke immediately when the blonde sensed the commander’s unease. Lexa knew once the chaos was starting to settle people would demand answers. It would be all too easy to blame Skykru for what had happened. She was fairly certain there would be losses in all clans through the coalition.

She organized scouts to be sent out to all clans immediately, intent on finding out the extent of what had happened in each individual clan of the coalition.

It was obvious just after a few minutes that Skykru had the most people “misplaced” in the capitol. More and more appeared of them.

Gustus, who had also taken a key and had gotten separated from them, had reappeared at Lexa’s sight. His whole poise screamed of remorse. The commander would have to speak with him later. She regarded him as the most trustworthy witness. Marie had used her healing talent in the City of Light and Lexa feared what would happen if knowledge of the child’s power spread. Ideally, her power had not manifested visually in the City of Light. Otherwise, she doubted even she would be powerful enough to keep their daughter safe.

Lexa felt Marie trembling standing between herself and Anya. She knew they needed to get the child inside the tower before she would collapse or have a breakdown. Neither of them truly knew what Marie had lived through in the City of Light and Lexa feared what this added trauma would do the child. She also vividly remembered Hera’s warning about Marie’s talent. Lexa didn’t understand what exactly their daughter had healed in the City of Light. Herself? The flame?

The healers of the tower fanned out into the streets of the city. They had no idea how many people would “wake” from the influence of this program, probably dazed and parched. Lexa would receive numbers of how many had been lost within the clans soon enough.

Just as it had been easy to start giving orders, Lexa knew it would become increasingly difficult during the next days and weeks. The coalition didn’t have an enemy any longer which bound them together. The flame seemed to be dormant. The usual lingering presence she felt in her mind was gone. If this fact became common knowledge their complete system of rule would be questioned.

“We need to get her inside” Anya’s sharp tone disrupted Lexa’s internal thinking. The general’s tone had been low, but urgent. Lexa felt it now as well. Marie’s little hand shook stronger within her own grasp. The child’s gaze seemed fixed on something which only she could see while her complexion was far too pale.

Lexa sent Gustus ahead with the order to make a sweep of the upper level of the tower. They didn’t know yet if indeed the whole tower had been affected. She could guess though that there wouldn’t have been any guards left. Either slain by those under the key’s influence or they had taken one as well.

Marie’s steps faltered noticeably as they stepped towards the entrance of the tower. Although its appearance had returned back to normal Marie clearly didn’t trust that.

Both women internally also wondered how it was even possible for the stark changes in the architecture they had seen what felt like only mere moments ago to completely vanish. It almost appeared as if nothing out of the ordinary had occurred.

Anya’s brown eyes were vigilantly scanning each and every corner they crossed. The general frowned when they passed by the throne room. A young Skykru youth was pulled out of it by a guard, loudly claiming to have no knowledge of how he ended up there or where he even was at all. He appeared intimidated enough by the guards for his claim to be true, not all Skykru had come into contact with grounders yet.

Lexa kept one hand on Marie’s shoulder, hoping to ground the child with her physical touch. The child’s grey eyes still flickered around uncertainly. She gasped at times and her eyes widened noticing an unnatural flicker of red in a corner. Marie pulled on her hand and her smaller fingers trembled within her grasp. “There is no red light, right?” her voice had a shrill tone as she looked at Lexa almost pleadingly.

Anya looked at their daughter with a furrow between her brows. The elevator was being powered again and it just opened in front of them.

Marie’s breathing quickened audibly. The elevator looked normal again although the child clearly wasn’t seeing that at the moment.

“There is nothing to fear, Marie” Lexa tried to reassure the girl in a gentle tone while she gave her fingers a squeeze.

Marie looked up at her shortly, her eyes still wide but something flickered in their depth. She nodded curtly, let go of Lexa’s hand and straightened herself, expression stony only a flash later.

Risha growled minutely at the same corner where Marie’s gaze still lingered, and Lexa felt her stomach coil with dread. Had it been a mistake to organize for the members of Skykru to return to their own camp?

Commander and general watched their daughter’s changed behavior with mirroring frowns. The child’s back was straight, and her lips pressed into a thin line, her whole frame screamed of tension. Only her hands clenching at her sides trying to hide her lingering tremble belied the forceful façade the girl tried to wear.

Risha pressed close to one of her sides just as the doors of the elevator slid shut behind them. The contraption began moving upwards just a moment later. The wolf’s growling had ceased, and its blue eyes looked up at its human while Marie let her trembling fingers curl into its fur.

Anya didn’t know what to say to reassure the girl. It was clear she was trying hard to remain strong. The general didn’t want to know in detail just how much their daughter had suffered under the royal guard and Nia to have this stony mask in place. Before Echo had brought the child into Azgeda, Marie had always been far too easy to read. Anya would have never assumed to wish those days back.

The child’s façade cracked when they reached the top floor of the tower and were greeted with utmost chaos. The doors to their quarters stood wide open. Handmaidens and guards, Gustus one of them, bustled through the vast rooms picking things up from the room, righting furniture, and such.

Marie remained rooted in place in the open door, her eyes wide again as she shivered. The balcony door stood wide open, and the curtains were blown strongly by the chilly breeze.

Lexa passed by the girl quickly when she noted her small box of private treasures lying open next to the bed. Its contents had been strewn around carelessly. With internal relief Lexa found Costia’s necklace still next to the box. Some of the drawing Clarke had made of Marie had been mishandled and were torn in places and Lexa smoothed them out with slightly shaking fingers. Internally she felt the same unease Marie was displaying openly.

Her quarters had been breached before. An assassin waiting for her to return. Costia’s head in a box on her bed. But somehow having her most treasured keepsakes looked through and discarded like meaningless trash riled her up.

A guard had followed them. He carried a message. Lexa abandoned the small box, pushing it back to its original place under the bed. She accepted the message just as Anya guided the girl inside the room with a hand on one of her shoulders.

Risha walked through the room sniffing intently. The wolf’s ears flickered back and forth as if it could pick up sounds too fine for human ears.

Lexa immediately recognized Titus’s handwriting on the message and relief flashed through her mind. If Titus had had time to note down a message, she could assume the conclave to indeed have been brought to safety.

She scanned the message briefly and indeed breathed a little easier. Titus had written down in code his plan to bring the conclave to Luna referring to a certain safety protocol. The conclave would remain with the Boat People until the capitol was deemed safe again.

The guard hadn’t left yet. “Heda, we are still looking for the ambassadors. We can’t locate the ambassadors of Azgeda, Broadleaf, Plain Riders and the Lake People” he summarized quickly.

Lexa’s brows furrowed but she inclined her head in acknowledgement. “Notify me once all ambassadors have returned.” She would wait with holding an official meeting for all of them to resurface. Internally she wondered if those had taken the key or left on their own account.

The guard nodded curtly, bowing reverently in front of the commander before he excited the commander’s quarters quickly.

Just as his footsteps faded on the long hall towards the elevator another pair of footsteps passed by him and got louder. Lexa recognized them immediately. Clarke. The blonde Skykru healer had never learned how to quieten her steps.

From the corners of her eyes, she spotted Anya trying to talk to Marie. The child’s expression had turned stony again. The child was shaking her head frantically at something.

“You are leaving?” Lexa questioned as soon as her gaze landed on Clarke. The reluctance on the other woman’s features a sure giveaway.

Clarke indeed swallowed forcefully and nodded. “Jackson didn’t make it. My mother will need my support as a doctor now.” The words were clear with intent although her expression let her reluctance to leave the capitol and thus Lexa shine through strongly.

Lexa inclined her head and was surprised when Clarke handed her a radio. “Just call through if you need anything.”

With cautious fingers Lexa accepted the radio. She had seen Clarke use one often enough to understand the limited numbers of buttons on the device. Still the concept of being handed a device for long-distance communication with the offer of help was alien to the commander.

Clarke’s voice was lower when she added. “You can expect heavy relapses.” Her blue eyes shortly flitted over to Anya and Marie.

Lexa swallowed thickly and nodded again. The way their daughter was acting now already enough proof of the girl’s fragile state of mind. She offered her arm to Clarke in the way warriors said goodbye with honor.

“It’ll be chaos now in the coalition, won’t it?” Clarke asked switching the subject while gaze lingered on Marie for a moment. “I know one of my people released this thing, but Skykru will stand with you, commander. We will help to erase the damage.” The determination in her blue eyes was clear, she would make her people see reason if she had to.

Lexa nodded again. The situation was almost ironical. Clarke still didn’t understand enough of the coalition’s politics. It would be Skykru the eyes of the other clans would turn to now. They were the only clan who had tech. The commander knew they would have lost without Skykru’s aid, especially Raven’s, the coalition wouldn’t know, neither would they believe that. Lexa wouldn’t be able to deny Skykru as the source of this latest crisis. Just how much damage had been done would remain to be seen.

Clarke hesitated visibly before she took Lexa’s arm.

The commander felt the blonde’s thumb ghost over the sensitive skin over the point of her pulse for a moment. They both swallowed thickly, their gazes intense. This wouldn’t be a goodbye forever. It was a promise. If they would reunite as something more would be uncertain.

A part of her longed to reach out and deepen their contact. Trying to find out what was left between them. But with the room bustling around them with handmaidens and guards still cleaning up the chaos too many eyes were watching to allow for such intimacy. So, Lexa instead straightened slightly, inclining her head as she let go of Clarke’s arms and watched the blonde healer exit her quarters mutely, unsure when they would meet again.

Lexa walked over to the table, placing the radio there in plain view. She wasn’t necessarily planning on using it, but she knew there were certain scenarios where she would need to reach out to Skykru on short notice. The worst-case scenario which she tried to push from her mind clearly her own failure to calm the clans and war being declared on Skykru.

Marie’s mind mirrored the chaos around them. Alie had forced her to relieve her most feared memories. Watching her mother wither away. Being locked up in the Skybox. Being left behind at the Mountain. And most prominently flashes of her time with Nia. The coldness of the room together with the lingering flash of redness she thought to have seen kept her mind locked on Nia. The queen’s voice screeching at her.

She had problems focusing on Anya’s presence in front of her. She felt Risha return to her side and her fingers immediately curled itself into the wolf’s thick fur. Marie tried to control her breathing, shaking her head against Nia’s voice resonating so sharply through it.

Marie’s vision blurred at the edges, the shapes of the room bending like heat waves. She dug her nails into Risha’s fur, grounding herself in the wolf’s steady warmth, but the phantom chill of Azgeda stone clung to her skin. Nia’s voice was still there, sharp, and merciless, echoing through the caverns of her mind.

On your knees, little girl. Say it again. You are mine to break.

Her stomach clenched so violently she thought she might be sick. She pressed both hands into Risha now, curling forward until her forehead brushed the wolf’s shoulder. Her breath came in short, broken gasps.

“Marie.” Anya crouched low in front of her, voice stripped of its usual steel. “Look at me.” She reached out, slow, as if approaching a wounded animal, but the girl only shook her head harder, a strangled sound catching in her throat.

“Is she having a panic attack?” Lexa’s voice cut through, taut with worry—worry that frayed at the edges of her command tone. Most of the handmaiden had already left the room as most of the chaos had been taken care of. Alira remained behind, watching the scene unfold with mirrored worry.

Anya’s head jerked toward her briefly. “Feels like it,” she answered, then softened again as she turned back. “Marie. It’s Anya. You’re not there. Do you hear me? Not there. Here.”

No, she’s not here, Nia’s ghost hissed in her skull, sharp as broken glass. You’re still mine. You’ll always be mine.

Marie whimpered low, curling tighter into herself, shoulders rigid with the effort of holding herself together. Risha wined lowly at her fur being pulled almost harshly.

Lexa was already moving, discarding the space commanders were meant to keep. She knelt beside Anya and with strong hands she framed Marie’s face, firm but gentle, guiding her chin up so their eyes could meet.

 

“Look at me, little star,” Lexa said, voice low but unwavering. “Look at me.” She repeated the order more firmly when the girl kept her eyes tightly shut.

Marie fought against the pull for a heartbeat, not completely recognizing who it was the touch came from—then her eyes lifted, grey and wide. Lexa held her there, her green-eyed gaze steady as stone. “This is real,” she murmured her reassurance. “My hands. My voice. Do you feel that?” She guided one of the girl’s shaking hands from Risha’s fur onto her own chest, letting her feel her own breathing.

Marie nodded jerkily, tears running down her cheeks without her permission. Her breath was still shallow, but it stuttered less now, syncing to the rhythm Lexa was setting with her own slow inhale, slow exhale.

Anya’s palm settled against Marie’s back, broad and warm, anchoring her from behind. Risha pressed tighter at her legs, a silent shield of muscle and fur.

“You’re safe,” Lexa said again, and this time it wasn’t a command but a promise. “No one will harm you now.”

Something in Marie’s resolve broke then—quietly, almost soundless—inside the girl’s chest and the child’s body collapsed forward, sobs shaking her small frame from where she had tried to contain them, into the curve of Lexa’s neck.

Lexa closed her eyes and wrapped her arms around her, pulling her in with a by now practiced tenderness. For one fragile moment, she let the weight of her position slip and simply held her child, feeling each trembling breath against her skin while the girl’s tears moistened her neck.

Over Marie’s head, her eyes met Anya’s. The general’s jaw was tight, her own fear barely hidden behind strong resolve—but the flicker in her gaze was raw. They didn’t need words. Both knew this wasn’t over. Not for their daughter. Not for any of them.

Before they had travelled to Skykru to investigate what the reports about the distributed keys to the City of Light meant Marie had appeared reasonably settled in Polis again. There still had been nightmares, but they had gotten scarcer. Clarke’s warning before the blonde healer had departed rang through Lexa’s mind loudly. She knew they would need to expect relapses from Marie now. But Lexa also already knew that the coalition would be put to a test over the course of the next few weeks. Lexa hoped she would be able to support their daughter while she would be stretched thin with political duties.

Once the girl’s sobs started to die down Lexa scooped the girl up. It was reasonable to assume that the child should catch some rest now. She carried Marie over to the bed while Anya followed.

The general pulled back the furs to make room for their daughter. Marie’s grasp on Lexa’s coat was firm and the commander had to gently pry her fingers away.

“You’re not going to leave, are you?” Marie’s voice sounded small and uncertain while she looked between them with wide grey eyes.

Anya sighed under her breath audibly, shaking her head in the negative. She would need to inquire about the state of her unit soon. Judging from the missing ambassadors it was reasonable to assume at least parts of her unit to be missing as well. She could wait until morning to make an assessment.

“Not tonight” she promised firmly, brown eyes softened.

The general took off her own coat and boots quickly under Marie’s watchful gaze. The girl still held onto one of Lexa’s hands firmly. Risha had already jumped onto the foot of the bed.

“There is nothing to fear here right now, little star” Lexa tried to reassure the girl softly, giving her fingers a gentle squeeze.

“What happened with Ontari?” Marie’s grey eyes flickered with deeply rooted compassion.

Lexa inclined her head slightly. “Titus and the conclave left Polis.”

Marie exhaled forcefully, a little tension draining from her smaller frame.

Anya slid into the bed on Marie’s other side opening her arms in an inviting gesture. Marie hesitated visibly, her gaze lingering on Lexa until the commander obliged as well lying down on their daughter’s other side.

Risha huffed and stretched at their feet, a warm wall of fur against Marie’s ankles. For the first time since the City of Light shattered around her, the girl felt something close to safe. Not the fragile illusion of safety ALIE had whispered, but real, heavy, warm safety that smelled like leather and earth and home.

Chapter 48: Chapter 292

Chapter Text

The night had passed easier and quicker than expected. Anya later assumed that was mostly due to Marie’s bone deep exhaustion.

The girl was the first one to awake. Only the very first signs of light started to creep into their quarters. Marie tensed involuntarily feeling hands on her body, hands her muddled mind couldn’t immediately recognize. Only when her sense of smell identified Lexa’s and Anya’s personal smells mixed all around her, did she exhale forcefully, and the tenseness melted from her small frame.

It was still dim in their quarters. Her head ached just a tiny bit, nothing she would need any pain relieve from. Marie could feel one of Anya’s strong arms slung over her body from behind her, while she felt Lexa’s heart beating rhythmically under her ear. She must have slept cuddled up to the commander’s body closely. She could hear Risha’s huffing breath coming from the foot of the bed.

She tried to remind herself forcefully that she was safe here. Things felt different now though. When Marie closed her eyes little flashes of memories played out, memories she would rather leave untouched and pushed to the farthest possible places in her mind. The shadows the residual fire from the hearth cast onto the walls appeared alien now, frightening in a way they hadn’t been before. If she didn’t concentrate on them, they moved unnaturally almost as if Alie was controlling them again.

She shivered involuntarily and burrowed herself closer to Lexa’s body. A small irrational voice in her mind continued to whisper that these rooms weren’t safe anymore.

Anya continued sleeping undeterred by the slight movement. Lexa on the other hand woke immediately when Marie’s hands looked for something to hold onto. She felt the child’s hands fisting the material of her sleeping gown in apparent fright.

Cautiously Lexa wound both her arms around Marie, turning their daughter’s body so Anya’s hand slipped from it slowly. She hoped to let the general continue sleeping for a little while. Anya had gotten less disturbed by Marie’s constant movement during the night. So, it was usually Lexa who woke during their daughter’s first signs of a nightmare, settling her again. There hadn’t been any during the last night, so, Lexa felt reasonably rested already.

“What woke you up, little star?” Lexa asked the girl in a soft tone, keeping her voice low. She felt the girl’s body relax against her own immediately when she gently started letting one hand draw circular motions on her back, while the other carded through her blonde hair.

Marie frowned slightly. She couldn’t tell what had woken her only that she felt uneasy once she woke fully. “What happens now?” the girl asked instead of answering. Somehow what had happened during the last days felt too magnificent for life to just continue.

“I will need to find out how the clans were affected individually” Lexa answered honestly “Anya will also have to inquire about the state of the army.”

Marie hummed nonchalantly, loosely playing with a strand of Lexa’s long hair between her fingers. She wasn’t that interested in politics. “Is Ontari going to be back today?” she asked curiously.

“That depends on how fast they travel” came Lexa’s quick answer.

Marie inclined her head against the commander’s chest. She wished they could stay like this forever, peacefully cuddled onto the bed, safe.

Lexa felt the child’s body relax completely as her breath evened out again, obviously slipping back to sleep.

She closed her own eyes again as well, trying to meditate. Where there once had been a space where she could meet with the previous commanders, now there was only silence. Lexa gave up after a few minutes when she felt a headache building, instead she focused on the child’s soft breathing ghosting against her own neck.

~ ~ ~

When handmaiden had prepared a bath tube within the commander’s quarters the general insisted on accompanying their daughter into the bathroom. Although she didn’t say so out loud Anya wanted to be absolutely certain that there would not be bruises blooming on the girl’s frame which had no physical explanation.

Lexa had also asked for Gustus to come into their quarters. The commander still wished to speak with him, trying to assess how likely it was that anyone within the City of Light had witnessed Marie’s talent or at least understood what may have happened there.

Marie appeared reluctant to enter the bathroom, her gaze resting on Lexa sitting down at the table where breakfast was already laid out for them.

“You can have breakfast after your bath, Marie” Anya assured the girl with firmness in her tone.

The child’s grey eyes remained on the commander for a moment longer before she inclined her head still with reluctance etched into her young features. “She isn’t going to leave now, right?” the girl’s voice portrayed her uncertainty.

Anya furrowed her brows. “There isn’t a meeting scheduled immediately. The quicker you get into the bath the quicker you are out again.”

Marie all but jumped back from the bathing tube when the door to the bathroom fell closed behind them and a light reflection of the movement flashed over the metal surface of the bathing tube.

“Hey, hey” in her fright the girl had jumped away from the bathing tube, basically right against Anya’s sturdy frame. The general placed her hands on the girl’s thin shoulders in a grounding gesture. “It was just the light” she tried to reassure the clearly spooked girl in a soothing tone.

“Get undressed now, Marie” she added the order with a hint of sharpness when Marie just continued looking at her with widened grey eyes.

The child snapped into action at the sharpness immediately, all but tearing her clothes off as fast as possible. Anya pinched the bridge of her nose as her patience started to thin. She keenly remembered Abby’s words about continuing to treat Marie as normally as possible once the child her regained her memories before the war against Azgeda.

Anya halted the girl when she made to climb over the edge of the bathing tube, telling her to turn around slowly. With careful eyes she inspected the girl’s body. There were a few minor bruises scattered over the child’s skin, but it was reasonable to assume these could stem from normal bumps and the last few tumultuous days.

“What’s wrong?” Marie asked with a frown of her own.

Her hands at her side shook visibly. Anya didn’t know if the girl was trying to suppress the urge to hide her body or if she was scared.

“Nothing, little star” she tried to appease their daughter, gentling her tone on purpose. Neither Lexa nor she were certain if Marie had understood the possible repercussions of using her healing talent. “I am just making sure you aren’t hurt” she explained when Marie’s expression still showed her unease.

Marie finally nodded again, and she didn’t hesitate in taking Anya’s offered hand to help climb over the high edge of the bathing tube. Lowering herself into the water was another matter. The girl’s breathing hitched audibly when she gazed at herself and thought to spot a flicker of unnatural gleaming red within her eyes for the flash of a second.

Anya felt the increased shaking in their daughter’s hand that very moment. Her brows creased. “What’s wrong, little star? It is only plain water” she tried to reassure the girl quickly.

Her gaze was clearly grey-eyed when she looked more intently at her complexion, rippled by the little waves she had caused. Marie’s voice sounded small and breathless even to her own ears when she tried to explain what she had seen to her mentor.

Before Anya could formulate an answer Marie started to whisper to herself. “I am not weak” the child repeated the mantra a few times and the general felt her heart bleed for their daughter once more. The child had taken up that habit after her time of torture under Nia. Whatever had transpired in the City of Light had clearly awoken those memories fresh within the girl’s mind.

She still gave the girl’s smaller finger a reassuring squeeze, while she pulled a small stool closer to the bathing tube. Anya hadn’t planned to keep Marie company during her bath, but it seemed unwise now to leave her without supervision. She vividly remembered how the girl had scratched at her own skin with a brush in order to feel clean again and a small part of her deeply feared a repetition of this.

Marie gave her a shaky smile when her eyes opened again and she finally sat down in the water, inhaling the strong scent of herbs a handmaid had put into the water.

Anya let go of the girl’s hand and took up a washcloth. If she stayed in the bathroom she may as well help Marie wash.

Her chest tightened when she noticed the lingering uncertainty within the child’s huge grey eyes as she followed her every move. “There is nothing to fear here, little star, not with me” Anya murmured and met the girl’s gaze steadily.

The girl nodded faintly, a tremor still running through her small frame. When Anya cupped her jaw briefly, tilting her chin just enough to meet her eyes, Marie didn’t flinch this time.

“Breathe,” the general instructed. “Like this.” She exaggerated the inhale, slow and deep, then let it out like a sigh of wind through trees. Marie mimicked her, shaky at first, then steadier, until the rigidness in her spine began to loosen.

By the time Anya coaxed her to sink fully into the water, Marie was pliant, though her fingers stayed curled against the tub’s edge like a lifeline. The water sloshed softly around her as Anya began to wash the grime of chaos from her skin—gentle, rhythmic motions that asked for no words and gave her mind room to quiet.

When Marie finally spoke, it was so sudden Anya almost dropped the cloth. “Do you think Ontari’s safe?”

The question pierced through the calm like an arrow, but Anya masked the flinch before it could reach her eyes. “She’s strong,” she said, wringing the cloth slowly. “And smart enough to keep herself that way.”

Marie didn’t reply, but her shoulders eased a fraction, and when Anya glanced down, she saw a faint curve ghosting at the corners of the girl’s mouth—a fragile thing, but real.

~ ~ ~

Outside the bathroom Lexa waited for Gustus to arrive. She had to force herself to eat some of the provided breakfast. She knew already that the upcoming days would be strenuous, and she’d need all her strength to keep the coalition together. She had sacrificed too much to let it crumble.

Gustus arrived just a moment later. His burly figure hunched slightly, clearly feeling the guilt of self-reproach.

“Sit” Lexa ordered not unkindly. She knew there would be numerous others who had taken the key, Marie among them, she couldn’t damn those for their choice. But she needed answers, needed to know if Marie’s talent may have been revealed.

“Heda…” he hesitated for a moment and his mask slipped revealing how deeply he felt. “Lexa, I have failed you.” The usage of her first name so rare that the meaning was only enhanced.

The commander shook her head, waiving off his senseless apology. “Many more were in the City of Light. I need to know what you’ve seen” she stated the demand in a firm tone, her eyes burning with urgency.

Gustus inclined his head, his expression cleared of guilt somewhat. “I saw others. Mostly Skykru, but others from the clans as well” he began to enumerate.

“Did you see Marie?” Lexa questioned more directly.

Gustus’s brows furrowed for a moment before he shook his head. He hadn’t seen the blonde girl in the City of Light at all.

Lexa exhaled forcefully feeling the pressure on her chest ease slightly. She questioned him what the last things were he had seen in the City of Light before he woke up in Polis again.

The burly guard hesitated for a few moments. “Everything seemed to suddenly erupt in golden light” his tone and expression made it clear that he had no idea what the phenomenon meant.

Water sloshing from behind the bathroom door made Gustus notice Marie’s and Anya’s presence behind the door. He blinked at the door in confusion. “That was Marie?” he voiced his question tentatively.

Lexa regarded him in silence for a few seconds. He already knew of Marie’s healing talent, and she trusted him, so, she inclined her head in agreement. “I wouldn’t have been able to take Alie out without Marie’s aid” she muttered honestly.

“It really needs to stay hidden” Gustus said with a grim expression. He didn’t just say that for Lexa’s sake, although it of course was “handy” Marie was able to heal the commander, he had mostly spoken out of compassion for the sweet child herself.

Lexa already feared the day where circumstances would make the girl careless, using her gift in front of too many eyes, in front of those who couldn’t be trusted with her safety.

She had just sent Gustus to resume his post at the door to their quarters when the bathroom door finally opened again, she frowned slightly when she noted how Anya had to guide Marie back into the room with a hand behind the child’s back pushing her forward firmly.

The girl’s grey eyes scanned the room uncertainly for a moment before her gaze turned to Lexa and the table. A slight smile brightened her features when she finally stood next to the table.

The commander paused in her eating when Marie remained standing next to her. The girl only eyed the free chair on the other side of the table for a second before her gaze returned to Lexa, mutely pleading.

Lexa sighed slightly under her breath, trying to ignore her former mentor rolling her eyes at her indulging the child. She slung an arm around Marie’s smaller body, pulling her upwards swiftly so the girl could sit in her lap, a position the girl was actually too old for. The blinding smile which Marie sent her over her shoulder fleetingly was answer enough though.

Anya watched the proceedings with a slight frown. She was of the firm opinion that spoiling their daughter like that wouldn’t do the girl any good in the long run. But she knew her reasonings to be falling on deaf ears with the commander, so she didn’t waste her breath on them.

Both women watched with a frown how Marie reached out for a piece of bread with clearly trembling fingers, only to let her hand fall back to her side empty.

“You need to eat” Anya ordered with a clear hint of strictness in her tone, pouring a cup of tea for their daughter. It had been prepared already to sooth her nervous stomach; they had feared already that her problems with food may have returned. “Drink the tea, you know it will help.”

Marie pouted for a moment, reaching out for the cup obediently a moment later when Anya’s gaze turned into a glare laced with warning.

Lexa instinctively tightened her grip around the girl’s body. “You’re shaking” she murmured her observation with worry.

“Just cold” Marie tried to deflect. The way the girl wasn’t meeting either of their eyes gave her lie away easily. Her grey eyes still darted around the room nervously.

Anya knew this wasn’t about breakfast. It was so much more. She didn’t understand fully what was upsetting their daughter so much. But it was clear reassurances of safety weren’t working. She hoped the child would only need time to truly realize that the danger had indeed passed. She watched vigilantly how the girl started to nibble on her piece of bread after a few sips of the tea.

“You’ll need to eat more than that, little star” Lexa observed as well. The child’s body felt too light and fragile in her lap, the angles of her bones sharpened again with sudden weight loss.

Anya bit down her words of criticism when the girl picked up one of her beloved honey cakes. She would have definitely preferred the child to eat some cured meat, cheese or fruit. But she’d have to pick her battles wisely with their daughter and eating a honey cake was better than eating nothing after all.

Marie visibly melted against the commander’s frame when the woman bent down and pressed a kiss right on the crown of the child’s head. Anya internally wondered shortly when she had come so accustomed to Lexa handing out gentleness to the child that her own lips involuntarily ghosted up into the resemblance of a smile at the sight.

~ ~ ~

A little while later they had separated. Lexa had decided against taking Marie to the meeting with the ambassadors. Both women weren’t sure how Marie would act in such a meeting now and the commander assumed tensions would be running high. If Marie had a panic attack in such a meeting, she would not be able to stop it for the child’s sake or sooth her like she needed. Instead, Marie had accompanied Anya out of the tower.

For some reason which Anya couldn’t pinpoint Marie seemed to breathe a little easier once the sky was above them. She dearly hoped that Ontari would return unharmed with the rest of the conclave soon. She still considered taking both girls on a longer outing out of Polis. She had contemplated doing so already before the war against Azgeda. She would have to wait and see how things with the coalition would develop. If war was on the horizon Lexa would need her firmly by her side. On a personal level Anya highly doubted Lexa would agree easily to see their daughter leave the capitol, even just for a few weeks.

“Can we go by the stables?” the girl asked sweetly, grey eyes huge and pleading in her pale face.

Anya huffed lightly under her breath but gave a curt nod of approval regardless. They would pass by the stables on their way to the training grounds anyway.

The stables were alive with action. Stable boys and the stables master all occupied with taking care of the precious animals. It appeared as if a few of them had tried to kick at their enclosure and Anya could guess easily that no one had been left during the last days to take care of the horses.

Marie’s expression turned guarded when she noticed just how crowded the stables were. Lexa’s white mare neighing at the girl in clear recognition got her moving to the animal, quickly weaving herself through the bustle of activity, extremely careful not to touch anyone as it seemed to Anya’s watchful eyes.

The general stepped over to her own brown horse. The animal thankfully appeared unharmed and had already been brought fresh water and food.

“Hey, Muffin” Marie greeted the little foal next to Skairasha cautiously, extending one of her hands through the fence. The foal’s ears flicked towards her in interest, but it didn’t move into touching distance. Skairasha butted its enormous head lightly against Marie’s shoulder instead, clearly not satisfied with the lack of attention she was receiving.

Marie’s laugh sounded purer than it had in a while and Anya thought the detour to the stables was warranted just for that. She watched the girl greet the commander’s black mare as well as her own brown horse in silence, still amused by the way all the animals seemed enamored with the child.

The last stop the girl insisted on was the mutated horse Lexa had gifted her a while ago. It’s two pairs of ears flicked at Marie’s approach immediately, the light blue third eyes fixed on the girl.

Anya still felt a little uneasy around the beast. It was clear though that the animal had no intention of harming the child.

“I hope your leg is healing fine, there” Marie murmured to the horse in a soft tone “Have you been good?”

“Exceptionally good actually” the stable master had appeared next to Marie unexpectedly. He apparently wanted to take the chance of the horse being calm to take a closer look at it again. Marie watched with bated breath how he felt along the horse’s legs, clearly looking for any residual swelling. “It appears to have healed unexpectedly well” he observed, clearly still trying to make sense of Marie.

“So, I can ride it soon?” Marie’s enthusiasm was bright and sudden, and the girl suddenly seemed to consist of nothing but positive energy, fidgeting in her spot impatiently.

Anya’s features darkened. It was one thing to touch the beast through a fence, it was a completely different thing to try and ride it. Marie had absolutely no experience trying to tame a horse and the last thing she wanted was for their daughter to be physically hurt. “We shall see. But there is a lot more training before you can even think of riding that”.

Shouts from outside the stables interrupted them, Marie had clearly been intent on arguing.

“The conclave!” it rang through the streets excitedly. “The novitiates are returning.”

Chapter 49: Chapter 293

Notes:

Just as a pre-warning the next plot arc is being built from this chapter on. It will get very dark, but it also builts over the next few chapters.

Chapter Text

Marie ran towards the entrance of the stables faster than Anya could reach out to stop the child.

The general rolled her eyes at the girl’s overly eagerness, falling into step behind her quickly. They weren’t entirely sure how the atmosphere in the capitol would settle and she didn’t want the child wandering the streets on her own now. She didn’t want to find out how Marie would react to more whispers about her or someone actually confronting her more directly with negative suspicions.

Just when she wanted to call out to the girl to stop her, riders passed by the stables closely. The novitiates among them.

Anya closed up with Marie quickly, laying a hand firmly on the girl’s shoulder to keep her from moving right in front of the horses. Her own eyes quickly scanned over the group. Titus obviously hadn’t taken the nightbloods out of Polis alone. Rana was with them as well, just a handful of other warriors. Anya recognized three of them as part of the unit she held responsibility over.

She also found Ontari among the group. Thankfully her older charge appeared physically unharmed as far as she could tell.

Other warriors started to gather as well as inhabitants of the city, watching the proceedings with interest. She kept her hand firmly on her daughter’s shoulder, keeping Marie rooted in her place. She didn’t want the girl to cause a scene unwillingly. She knew without telling that Marie would be happy to reunite with Ontari.

She spotted a pair of inhabitants of TonDC whispering to each other. They weren’t standing close enough that Anya could have understood exactly what was said. The way they were looking at Marie made it clear that the blonde child was the topic though.

Marie’s attention was so focused on Ontari, that the whispers completely slipped her notice. Although both Lexa and Anya had reassured her that the conclave was most likely fine and on their way back to Polis, she had still been afraid, especially for the older girl. She breathed a little easier once she spotted Ontari riding in her usual pride stance.

Ontari dismounted closest to them and the dark-haired nightblood girl inclined her head respectfully in greeting to Anya. The general couldn’t miss the way how the girl’s dark eyes quickly seemed to scan over Marie’s smaller form standing in front of her with worry, relief flashed over her features visibly at seeing her unlikely friend unharmed.

“I am so glad you are alright” Marie exclaimed obviously trying hard to keep her tone low and Anya had to tighten her grasp on the girl’s thin shoulder to keep her from walking up to Ontari and undoubtedly hugging her way too enthusiastically for all the curious eyes watching them at the moment. The smile on the child’s features was honest and bright. No matter how relieved Anya was on a personal level to see the girl express positive feelings, she knew the danger broadcasting this into broad daylight may bring.

Greetings should wait until they were inside the tower at least. She doubted Marie would think too much about what she would tell Ontari. The dark-haired girl would be curious what exactly had happened. Details about the City of Light shouldn’t come to light though.

Ontari smiled briefly at the younger girl. “As am I” she retorted honestly, her dark eyes still lingered on Marie’s features probingly.

“Let’s get you back inside” Anya interrupted the girls before they could launch into a fuller conversation.

Ontari immediately inclined her head and turned towards the tower, while the other nightblood children were just ushered towards the tower as well by Titus and Rana. On quick inspection Anya couldn’t detect any obvious wounds on the different children, although Boo looked suspiciously as if he had been crying until mere moments ago.

Aden briefly inclined his head towards Ontari in mute acknowledgment before the blonde boy followed the rest of the conclave.

“Where…” Marie started to ask when Anya’s grip on her shoulder turned painful in a mute warning to keep silent. The girl briefly flicked her eyes over her shoulder at Anya, clearly unsure what she had done wrong.

Anya slightly shook her head. The protocols which were in place to protect the conclave were secret and although it wasn’t likely the children would need to be evacuated again any time soon, it still wasn’t wise to blurt out their safe location just like that.

Ontari watched the mute exchange with the hint of a frown between her brows. Her frown deepened once they had stepped inside the tower and Marie’s steps faltered visibly right in front of the elevator. Instinctually, she stepped a little closer to Marie. She couldn’t see what had unsettled the girl. Had it just been a flash of a reflection?

Marie’s smile faltered visibly when Anya pushed her into the elevator.

“There is nothing to fear here” Anya repeated the reassurance in a firm tone. There was no hint of any residual change in the tower. She internally wondered how their daughter would now fare with combat training. If the girl froze up there unpredictably as well, she would pose a danger to herself and those around her.

Marie looked up at Anya for a moment. The woman’s brown eyes were hard as they looked down on her. She toyed with the hem of her sleeve uncertainly. She knew deep down that it was irrational to expect Alie’s warped reality to come back, but she couldn’t shake the fear off.

Once the door to the elevator had shut behind them and they moved upwards. Ontari tried to distract Marie.

“We were at the Boat People” she proclaimed with the hint of a smile.

Marie’s features immediately brightened. “Did you meet Adria?” she asked curiously. The days she had spent with Lexa and Anya with the Boat People after her miraculous recovery were by far her most treasured memories. Things had been so peaceful there. She had just been a child there, playing with the others, enjoying the sun and for once having both her mothers just for herself without any political duties binding their time. Luna’s daughter had fascinated her greatly and Marie would have loved to spend more time there and getting to know the other girl even better.

Ontari’s expression looked slightly miffed as she inclined her head in agreement to the younger girl’s question.

Marie slightly tilted her head in confusion. “You didn’t like her?” she picked up on Ontari’s reaction immediately.

The dark-haired girl pressed her lips into a thin line. They hadn’t been with the Boat People longer than a handful of nights and although she had seen Adria, she could not claim that the younger girl had left any lasting impression on her. She still remembered how Marie had basically enthused over Adria for weeks after the girl had returned with the commander and general. “She is just a girl” Ontari finally settled on a retort, trying to keep her tone even. She couldn’t pinpoint exactly why her stomach clenched slightly at the clear remaining enthusiasm for Adria on Marie’s features. Neither why she wondered if Marie smiled like that if she was speaking about her to someone else.

Anya watched the exchange between her two charges with a huff. She doubted the girls would find too much time to squabble about feelings once she turned up their training regime. Marie had lost weight and mostly muscle noticeably. Both of the girls would also need to attend a few meetings, showing their continued support to Lexa’s rule.

She questioned Ontari on what had happened in the capitol, diffusing the conversation between them for now.

Anya listened to the retelling with a slight frown. It almost sounded more like luck that the conclave had still been evacuated. The keys had already started to be distributed within the tower as they left.

Ontari hesitated for a moment, her eyes briefly flicking to Marie. The young girl was listening tentatively as well and her features clearly showed her fear for what might have happened. Her throat suddenly felt dry as she added: “One of those who had taken it turned to me just as Titus brought us out. He told me you were with them, that you needed my help…”

Marie’s grey eyes widened visibly, and she lowered her head shamefully. Her blood ran cold at the realization that Alie had tried to get Ontari into the City of Light as well, most likely due to their personal connection. Her words weren’t more than a whisper when she admitted “I was there.”

Ontari audibly sucked in a harsh breath, while surprise and shock warred on her features, for once not hidden. The question what exactly had happened burned on her tongue, but the way the younger girl was suddenly shivering visibly let her swallow it down instead.

“It is over, Marie” Anya squeezed the girl’s shoulder. Marie had already told them that she had agreed to take the key under the assumption that Lexa was in the City of Light and needed her. So, she wasn’t too surprised to hear that this tactic had been used in Polis for compliance as well.

They passed by Ontari’s room shortly. The girl dropped off the few scarce belongings she had packed hurriedly. She left both girls in the room on their own for a little while as one of the guards had a message for her.

Once the door fell closed behind Anya Marie didn’t restrain herself anymore. Enthusiastically she stepped closer to Ontari who was in the middle of undressing, left in her trousers and chest bindings. She threw her arms around the older girl, hugging her forcefully.

Ontari froze at the sudden unexpected contact. When she felt Marie resuming to shake, she let herself go softer, winding her arms around the smaller body as well.

“Hey, everything is fine” Ontari tried to reassure the younger girl. She direly hoped the girl wasn’t slipping into a full-fledged panic attack. She had seen the girl suffer through those before the war against Azgeda and she had only seen Lexa being able to fully calm Marie again.

“I was so worried” Marie breathed out in a small tone, shifting in their embrace a little. Her grey eyes shone wet suspiciously. Her breath stuttered a little. No matter how unreal everything felt around her, Ontari’s presence hadn’t changed. She remained real.

“You can’t imagine how worried I was about you” Ontari admitted and smoothed the girl’s blonde hair gently with one hand. She hadn’t known if she should believe the man who had claimed that Marie was in the City of Light. If Titus hadn’t basically dragged her out of the tower Ontari wasn’t sure if she would not have agreed to take the key just for the chance that the man had spoken true and the younger girl indeed needed her help.

Marie’s smile was watery and wobbly when she looked up at her. “You’re not going to leave me again, are you?” a frightened plea colored her tone strongly.

“Not without a fight” Ontari retorted the assurance in a firm tone. The promise burning in her dark eyes. In the past she had already been willing to forfeit her life for Marie and she knew without the sliver of any doubt that nothing had changed about that.

“I should really change clothes, Marie” Ontari said after a moment, although letting go was the last thing she actually wanted. They were still standing in their weird embrace. She honestly couldn’t remember if she had ever hugged someone like this in the past. But she knew it couldn’t take too long until the general returned for them. As the woman had instructed her to get dressed for training it was clear the Trikru woman intended to take them to the training grounds.

Marie pouted visibly but finally loosened her grip on Ontari. The hint of a blush creeped up her neck as she rubbed at her eyes quickly.

The door opened again without any warning and the general stepped inside. Her features were unreadable for a moment. “Why aren’t you dressed yet?” she asked in a sharp tone. She had been gone long enough for Ontari to have had more than ample time to get changed.

The dark-haired girl immediately sprang into action, switching clothes and putting on light armor quickly.

“Has something happened?” Marie questioned uncertainly. She wasn’t blind to the sudden increased rigidity in Anya’s frame.

“Nothing you need to concern yourself with” Anya retorted immediately in a tone which rang with finality. The message had been from Lexa. The ambassadors were uneasy, and more people had been affected than assumed in Polis. Accounted losses already as high as over 150 deceased inhabitants of the capitol. The commander wouldn’t join them before dinner, having planned multiple meetings in the hopes of stabilizing the current chaos at least slightly.

Marie’s clothing would do for training, so, they didn’t need to travel to the highest floor before they could go to the training grounds. Although the blonde child was trying to hide it, it was clear she had been on the brink of tears. Anya didn’t see what could have upset the girl and as the girl didn’t seem to wish to tell her immediately, neither was she still crying, Anya decided to simply let the matter rest. If Marie wanted to tell her what was on her mind, she knew the girl would do so eventually.

On the way back down the girls were both silent. Marie sensed that something was wrong. Anya’s mood had obviously soured. Ontari sensed the same and she wasn’t planning on angering her mentor on purpose. She was glad the woman hadn’t walked in a moment earlier; she didn’t want to know how the reaction to her intimate hug with her daughter would have been.

Marie stepped closer to Anya once they stepped out of the tower, suddenly keenly aware of all the eyes which seemed to have turned towards her. She grasped onto one of the woman’s hands with pleading eyes and thankfully Anya didn’t shake off her fingers. The woman didn’t appear pleased at the open contact, but she at least let her be.

Internally Anya frowned, when they had stepped out of the tower before Marie had appeared slightly surer of herself in comparison to her behavior inside the tower. It almost seemed as if the added trauma had made Marie’s responses more unpredictable than before. She didn’t like that development at all. If they planned for Marie to show her continued place at Lexa’s side publicly soon they would need to be sure the girl wouldn’t cause an unwanted scene, otherwise their intentions could only deepen the whispers into open distrust against Marie.

Training went worse than Anya had expected. Marie seemed unconcentrated. Her grey eyes flitted around restlessly, and she barely put any visible effort into following the drills Anya commanded.

Ontari’s performance was satisfactory. Although Anya would have liked it better if the nightblood girl would stay focused solely on her own training. She saw the girl’s dark eyes watching Marie from the corner of her eye almost constantly. Neither did she miss the flicker of irritation passing over the girl’s features whenever she gave an order to Marie more sharply than necessarily needed.

“You get on target practice with a bow” Anya ordered Ontari to move to a different part of the training grounds. She knew the girl would be able to start on her own. She would control her movements for subtle enhancements later.

Marie frowned visibly as Ontari immediately left. She liked shooting with a bow fairly well, but it seemed Anya had different plans with her.

The general threw a short sword at her. Marie gulped slightly. They had been training with wooden staffs for the last hour. Either she had been doing well and Anya wanted to progress her, or she had done poorly, and the woman wanted to push her.

Judging from the annoyed glint in Anya’s eyes Marie could already gather it was the latter option. She tried to swallow down the sudden lump in her throat as she took up a defensive stance opposite of Anya.

“Block and counter” Anya all but barked the instructions at her “And don’t forget to get those feet moving!”

She had noted a small group of warriors from the Rockline clan watching their training. The younger men were joking in hushed tones about what a meek and pitiful picture the commander’s legendary second gave. Their words incensed her, but she knew trying to argue with them wouldn’t do any good. She hoped Marie would step up in a training match against herself.

Marie’s felt as if even her teeth rattled when she blocked Anya’s first attack. There had been much more force behind it than she would have assumed. Her feet slid back on the ground slightly on the heavy impact and her own counterstrike was nothing in comparison.

Anya barely left her any time before she continued with another attack. Marie blocked with great effort and when she pulled up her own sword to answer the attack, the sunlight caught on her blade, reflecting in her eyes for a brief flash and without any warning Marie felt her heart stutter and fingers grew lacks around the swords handle. It fell to the ground with a resonating cluttering sound.

Laughter echoed unmistakable from behind them, and Anya’s jaw was clenched tightly. She had thankfully not been in the process of attacking the girl right when she froze, or she could have unwillingly hurt her. “Pick that up right this instant!” Anya said through clenched teeth, her anger rising exponentially with every further second Marie remained motionless.

The seconds seemed to tick by awfully slow until Marie finally blinked and bent down to retrieve her abandoned blade. She tried to apologize, but Anya waved her off impatiently, telling her to resume training instead.

The general was more careful of the rest of training anticipating that Marie could freeze in her movement without any warning. Thankfully there was no repetition during their sparring match and Anya kept it short, bringing Marie to her knees and disarming her rather harshly with a stinging hit on the child’s knuckles.

Marie’s mood was bleak when they returned to the tower. Ontari had been called to a theoretical lesson with the rest of the conclave. Right before the entered the tower a sudden loud clashing noise behind them on the streets made her freeze again. She was still rubbing at her smarting knuckles and the sudden sting as she pressed on the tender spots a little too strongly routed Marie back in the presence immediately.

Anya’s brows were deeply furrowed as she pushed the girl right towards the elevator. The second the child had frozen in her steps just now hadn’t gone unnoticed by her.

“I am sorry” Marie muttered under her breath, barely meeting Anya’s gaze. She could sense easily enough that Anya wasn’t happy with her at all.

Anya pursed her lips slightly “Do better the next time” she retorted instead of simply accepting the apology.

“Do you want to take a bath?” the general questioned just as they stepped out of the elevator on the top floor of the tower.

Marie immediately nodded. The training had left her sweaty and dusty. She could already sense that a few of her muscles would be protesting painfully tomorrow from the sudden increase in training. Dread coiled in her stomach uncomfortably, Anya hadn’t even seemed to notice that she had tried at practice.

Anya ordered for a bath to be prepared with the guards at the entrance to their quarters. It didn’t take long for handmaidens to start carrying in steaming buckets of water.

“You’re not angry with me, are you?” Marie had stepped up to the couch almost cautiously, worrying her bottom lip and still wringing her hands in clear signs of agitation.

Anya exhaled forcefully, placing the mug with tea she had just prepared for herself on the table. She waved the girl closer to her, placing her hands on the girl’s thin shoulders once she was in touching distance. “I am not, but you will need much more training again.”

Marie’s grey eyes flitted to the floor for a moment, and she seemed almost reluctant when she inclined her head in mute agreement.

“Go on” Anya gave the girl’s shoulders a slight squeeze before letting go. A handmaid had just proclaimed that the bath was ready. “I trust you can bath alone.”

Marie nodded quickly. She would have preferred for Anya to come with her, but it seemed as if the general wanted to be alone and she felt as if she had annoyed the woman enough already.

Chapter 50: Chapter 294

Notes:

The new plot arc really starts with this chapter.

And of course, I am always greatful for any reviews :)
I am writing chapter 311 right now, so, I still got a few chapters finished.

I've received several messages from artists who would like to make something for this fic against payment of course.
Please refrain from those messages.
This story is a hobby for me.

Chapter Text

Marie stood in front of the bathing tube for far longer than she cared to admit.

She had already undressed, and her used clothes lay in a heap on the ground. She was just standing in front of the metal tub, watching the perfect surface of the water. When a slight breeze of wind ghosted through the door which she hadn’t closed fully, the candlelight reflection eerily reminded her of the glass reflections in the City of Light.

Her breathing quickened against her conscious will and Marie had to exert all her mental power not to let the rising panic swallow her whole. What had Lexa told her when she had panic attacks in the past?

Seek for something grounding around you. A sight, a smell, a feeling.

 Marie still stepped closer to the bathing tube. She knew she had been weak during training. She felt as if she had tried, but it obviously hadn’t been enough for her mentor. She grasped onto the edge of the metal tub, closing her fingers harshly against it. She felt the edge biting against the soft inside of her hands.

The sting staggered her breathing immediately, the crescendo of her panicked thoughts stopped, and the clear water surface came back into view. Candles. It was only candles and water.

Cautiously Marie climbed over the high edge of the tub. She would have liked for Anya to be with her in the bath. The woman could possibly wash her hair and back or just simply sit there. But the distance between the couch and the bathroom suddenly felt impossibly wide. Did she deserve that kind of comfort after her performance during training?

Marie wished Lexa would return from her duties already. She knew without doubt that her mommy wouldn’t care about her lacking training performance. The woman may even join her in the bath, letting her soak against her strong unshakable frame.

She felt the water sting slightly against a few superficial grazes scattered around her skin. It wasn’t a bad sensation exactly. It reminded her sharply that this bath was real. According to Alie there would have been no pain in the City of Light. So, pain was a sure indicator that she definitely could not be back there.

Still thinking about Lexa, Marie started lowly humming the melody of the lullaby the commander something sang to her. If she closed her eyes, leaned back and let the warmth of the water sooth her, she could almost imagine it was the woman herself doing the humming.

~ ~ ~

Lexa’s steps grew softer as she the doors to their quarters were opened and closed behind her. Her boots left faint traces on the floor as she stepped through the room and immediately started to rid herself of the regalia of the commander.

She stopped in her movements when she noticed the door to the bathroom being ajar slightly. Soft candlelight, smell of herbs and low humming sifted through the door. Lexa felt the tenseness of the day beginning to melt almost involuntarily. Her previously grim expression softened for a beat, knowing that behind that door her daughter was undoubtedly thinking of her. She would join her in a few moments.

“How did the meetings go?” Anya’s voice called her from the place where her former mentor was sitting in front of the lit hearth. A cup of tea still rested in her strong hands.

Lexa’s softness bled away for frustration. She shook her head with a huff, turning from the bathroom and their waiting daughter towards her general.

“The ambassadors know Skykru has something to do with what happened” Lexa started with an exhausted edge to her tone. She had spent all day trying to calm the ambassadors and she wasn’t certain if she had succeeded. “Suspicion is growing into accusations. The clans demand Skykru’s tech either being destroyed, or its usage controlled by me.”

Anya frowned at that piece of information. Skykru may have started to adapt more towards how her own people had survived on earth, but taking their tech from the small clan didn’t sound like a feasible solution. Neither would she assume Skykru to agree to the condition of the clans to only use tech under the commander’s control and direct order. “They are not questioning your place though?” she voiced the question cautiously and with bated breath.

Lexa’s green eyes were hard when she shook her head. “Not at the moment” the younger woman hesitated visibly, and the mask of the commander slipped from her features, cracking at the edges, uncertainty bleeding through. “No one knows yet that the flame has fallen silent.”

Anya blinked in growing confusion. “The flame has fallen silent?” she echoed the words as if they were alien to her. And they were.

Lexa swallowed thickly. “I was always able to confer with the previous commanders during meditation. That’s gone now. If the ambassadors get hold of this knowledge, they will question if I am still the commander.”

Anya felt her own body answer with renewed tenseness. She nodded briskly. She knew what that meant. This piece of information simply couldn’t become public knowledge. There was no doubt in her mind Lexa’s apprehension would be validated. Lexa had ruled as commander far longer than the previous commanders had. People weren’t sure if this was truly a good thing. They would use anything they could find to push for a new commander. But this would ultimately lead to Lexa’s death.

“The silence started when the City of Light fell. I’ve tried every meditative pattern, every ritual I know of. Nothing, there is only silence left.” The commander took up pacing in front of the hearth, her boots clicking softly against the floor, while she shed the rest of her armour. “The ambassadors think the golden light some people have seen in the City of Light was the flame. If only they knew” the last part was added bitterly. “They sense that something is amiss. They are circling me like a hungry pack of wolfs. Some whispers are already going around that Skykru may have the power to mess with the flame.”

Anya’s eyes widened at the gratitude of the whispers. Her mind already circling how they could quelch those whispers. She sat the cup down with a loud click against the polished surface of the table. “Those whispers need to stop.” They sounded dangerous no matter from what perspective they looked at it. If Lexa’s place was questioned, the commander could be replaced. If the golden light was linked somehow to Marie, nothing would be powerful enough to keep the child safe.

“There is another meeting tomorrow. Marie must stand steadfast at my side then” Lexa inclined her head. “They must see her strong. See us united.”

“Strong?” Anya echoed with a huff and her features reflected her internal trouble. “She is as far removed as strong as possible. She freezes in the streets; she can barely enter the elevator. She froze completely during training, going as far as letting her sword drop.” Her jaw clenched with tenseness.

Lexa’s brows furrowed at her former mentor’s words. Her mind whirling with the question if they could even risk bringing the child into the spotlight like this. She still thought the alternative of letting the child hide would send an even worse message to those whispering doubts.

“You haven’t seen it today, Lexa. Warriors from Rockline clan openly mocked the girl. Loud enough for others to hear. Just then her hands shook so strongly that the blade dropped from her hand, simply because there was a reflection of light. If that had been a real fight, she’d be dead now. Her mind still seems to be in that cursed city” Anya’s jaw clenched even harder.

Lexa halted in her pacing with an even deeper frown. “You think hiding her will help?”

Anya stood up from the couch as well, reminiscing the height difference between them as their eyes met hotly. “Push her too hard now and she will break entirely. She is already on the verge of breaking” she retorted hotly. What she had seen today unsettled her deeply and she feared Marie causing a scene with the heated political atmosphere would only worsen the situation.

Lexa clenched her teeth together forcefully. The muscles in her jaw twitched from the force while her mind calculated. “You know how the whispers and rumours will grow if we do nothing. Her absence was noted already today. It’s necessary she shows herself with me. I might be able to cover up for a slip, but I can’t argue without her clear support.”

Anya rolled her eyes visibly. If she pictured their daughter being forced into a meeting tomorrow, she only saw disaster as a plausible outcome. “Rumours and whispers can be tamed. It will cost us, but that’s manageable. If she falters in front of them and trust in her, and ultimately you, is broken, no words of yours will fix that. Believe me, Lexa, she is NOT ready! It will be both your lives on the line then.”

~ ~ ~

While Marie had continued to bath peacefully, humming the soothing memory to herself, she had heard Lexa’s entrance.

She wanted to call out to Lexa intent on asking the commander if she wanted to join her. The water was still comfortably warm and she knew Lexa enjoyed bathing as much as she did.

The pieces of the undeniably heated conversation between her mothers let the call die on her tongue though and Marie made herself smaller in the bath.

They echoed in her mind like haunted mantras and Marie’s breathing hitched.

“…She is NOT ready!” Anya’s voice sounded through her mind loudly, accusation dark in her tone.

“It’s necessary she shows herself with me.” Lexa’s voice sounded almost as hard her exhaustion audible even through the half-closed door.

Anya’s words echoed painfully and Marie felt her stomach clench painfully. She had already sensed that she had disappointed the woman, but not exactly just how deeply. “…as far removed from strong as possible”

“… both your lives on the line…” The last part settled in her stomach like a heavy stone.

Marie let herself sink down in the tub, submerging her head completely. The water around her drowned out the ongoing conversation. The relief she had hoped to find in the silence was suffocating as her own mind wouldn’t stay quiet.

Still clutching tightly to the rim of the bathing tub Marie now relished in the sharpness of the sting against her palms. Her knuckles grew white under her skin, while her face burned red with shame as she resurfaced from the water.

“I will do better” she whispered to herself, feeling the water running down her face. All of a sudden, the water felt cold around her, although it still steamed gently. There was no comfort any longer to be found in the bath and Marie carefully got to her feet, climbing out of the tub as the reflections of the candlelight were once more distorted by her movements.

The discussion in the other room was still ongoing. It sounded as if Anya relinquished and agreed to prepare her for the meeting.

“She will need to be there. There simply is no other option right now” Lexa’s tone rang with finality.

“Then pray the ambassador’s favour will not cost you your daughter” Anya’s words were nothing but a heated mutter.

Marie took up one of the towels, quickly drying herself off and clutching the fabric around her shaking form strongly. She stepped in front of the slightly foggy mirror. She exhaled forcefully, willing her fingers to stop shaking as she reached out and whipped the fog away. Her face looked back at her, pale and shaking.

The things she had just overheard were twisted by her own mind further. Suddenly it was Queen Nia’s cruel sharp voice whispering back at her.

“See my dumb little girl? You are not enough for them. You will never be enough.”

I will prove them wrong. Marie thought to herself, trying extremely hard to blend out the harsh doubts coursing through her mind now. She hadn’t heard all of what had been said, but it was enough for her to gather just what was at stake. She would do exactly what her mothers needed of her. She had been able to follow orders more or less to the dot under the royal guard of Azgeda. She knew she could force herself to do this again.

She watched the lingering uncertainty in her pale features give way to sheer determination. She simply had to succeed, there was no other option.

“What would you say if I take her and Ontari away from Polis for a while?” Anya’s voice questioned in a cautioned tone.

Marie’s grey eyes widened in her reflection. Internally everything screamed in her to walk out of the bathroom and tell both her mothers plainly that she didn’t want to be separated from Lexa.

Silence greeted Anya’s question for a moment as if Lexa was contemplating her answer, probably going through different possible scenarios in her head. Marie felt the silence settle painfully; the commander hadn’t shot down Anya’s proposition immediately.

“We shall see if that becomes necessary” Lexa’s voice hinted at a sliver of regret. “If the Rockline Clan already whispers so strongly about her, it may be wise to send you on a political journey there, sending a clear message.”

Marie gulped silently; a lump formed in her throat while her fingers began trembling again. She understood what had not been said plainly.

If I become a liability I will be send away.

Her expression in the mirror wavered as her eyes blurred with unshed tears. But then it hardened in the mirror and Marie turned from the glass, dressing herself in a fresh set of prepared clothes quickly and efficiently.

While everything inside her screamed with the all encompassing need to run out of the bathroom and fling herself in her mother’s arms, clinging to Lexa as long as the commander still offered her comfort. Would her mommy ever sing the lullaby to her if she failed again?

No more weakness. The mantra rang through her head loudly as she reached out and combed her hair, holding onto the brush so hard she could feel its edges bite into her fingers. Tomorrow she promised to herself she would try braiding her hair herself.

~ ~ ~

When Ontari entered the commander’s quarters a while later, the sight that greeted her gave her pause.

The guard at the door had told her she’d been summoned for dinner, and she had half-expected the usual: Marie curled against the commander on the couch, eyes bright as Lexa read aloud from some old scroll. That was how Ontari most often found her — small, soft, and content in a way Ontari could never quite imagine for herself.

But tonight was different.

The blonde girl was seated on the rug before the hearth, her back straight, a heavy book balanced across her lap. She didn’t even glance up at Ontari’s arrival. Her small lips moved soundlessly with the words; eyes fixed on the page with a concentration that seemed almost too sharp, too forced.

Anya occupied one of the armchairs, methodically drawing her whetstone down the length of her sword, the rasping sound filling the room in steady rhythm. Across from her, the commander bent over a spread of scrolls, scanning one after another, her jaw tight with unspoken tension.

The fire crackled. The only sound besides it was the scrape of steel and the quiet rustle of turning pages.

Ontari shifted her weight uneasily, the silence feeling heavier than usual. Something had changed — she just didn’t know what.

She lingered near the door, unsure if she should speak. Normally Marie would have called out to her already, breaking into a smile, waving her closer. Now the girl’s head stayed bowed, fair hair spilling forward as though to shield her from the room itself. The firelight cast flickering shadows over her pale face, making her look older somehow — harder.

Ontari’s gaze flicked toward the commander, then to the general. Neither woman gave any sign of noticing her hesitation. Anya’s strokes with the whetstone came with steady precision, each rasp along the blade measured and deliberate. Lexa’s eyes moved across the scrolls with the same sharp focus Ontari had seen her carry into battle.

The silence pressed on her chest until she shifted uneasily. “You asked for me?” she tried, her voice quiet but breaking the brittle calm.

Marie’s head jerked the slightest fraction, as though the words had tugged her from someplace far away. But she didn’t speak, didn’t even look up, only turned a page with careful, deliberate slowness.

 

Ontari frowned. She couldn’t remember ever seeing Marie so… still.

Anya seemed to analyse the situation differently and a sliver of pride flashed over her features when her brown eyes flitted over Marie’s continued concentration. Lexa’s gaze which shortly flitted over Marie showed more worry than pride, before her green eyes settled on Ontari.

The nightblood girl immediately straightened herself under the commander’s gaze. She felt the heat of it settle on her shoulders like a mantle, heavier than the light armour she wore earlier in the day. For a moment she wondered what exactly the commander saw when she looked between her and Marie — the bond they shared, or something still lacking.

“Dinner will be served in a moment,” Lexa proclaimed easily, her tone carrying none of the weariness Ontari thought she detected in her eyes.

Ontari inclined her head quickly, the motion sharp and disciplined, but her dark gaze drifted back to Marie. The younger girl hadn’t moved, hadn’t spoken a word, her lips pressed into a thin line as her finger hovered over the edge of the page. Ontari’s stomach knotted with unease. She could imagine that the general wasn’t too happy with the younger girl at her performance during training. She highly doubted though that Anya would have hurt the child. Marie and she both had survived under Nia and the royal guard of Azgeda, no matter what the Trikru woman said that surely couldn’t be worse?

And yet, as her gaze lingered on the small blonde form sitting so still before the fire, Ontari wasn’t certain. Marie looked as though one harsh word might shatter her, as though she was holding herself together by sheer will alone. The thought unsettled Ontari more than she wanted to admit.

The clatter of trays and soft shuffle of servants’ feet finally broke the silence. Platters of roasted meat, bowls of steaming roots and greens, and fresh bread were laid out swiftly before the hearth. The scents of spiced broth and smoke filled the commander’s quarters.

Marie only moved when Lexa gestured her closer, obediently taking her place at the low table without a word. She folded her hands neatly in her lap until the bowls were set before her, the picture of composure.

Anya set aside her whetstone, her tone even as though she were merely discussing the weather. “I told Lexa earlier—it may be wise to make a journey to the Rockline Clan. To still the whispers before they take deeper root.” Her eyes flicked toward Ontari. “I want you with us.”

Ontari straightened automatically, pride sparking for a heartbeat at the thought of being included in such a mission. She had been included in the war against Azgeda most likely because of her knowledge of the land and especially her insight into the Queen’s fortress.

But her gaze now darted quickly to Marie, expecting some flash of relief or worry, anything that betrayed what she felt about being sent away from Polis. She highly doubted that being separated from the commander was anything the girl would enjoy. They had started sleeping together with the girl to keep her nightmares at bay.

But still there was absolutely nothing.

The younger girl only lifted her spoon, blew gently across the broth, and tasted it as if Anya’s words had been of no consequence at all. Her expression did not shift, her eyes fixed on her meal with studied calm.

Ontari’s brow furrowed. She knew Marie well enough to know that silence was not indifference. The lack of reaction was too deliberate, too… empty. It left a chill crawling over her skin and little alarm bells went off her mind.

Marie thanked the servant who refilled her cup, voice polite, tone smooth, posture flawless. She even remembered to cut her meat with precise motions Anya had drilled into her, never letting her elbow wander, never rushing.

To anyone else, it might have looked like improvement. Maturity. Discipline.

But Ontari saw it for what it was: performance.

Her spoon paused halfway to her lips. This wasn’t the girl who used to light up at Lexa’s smallest attention, who used to cling to her mother’s arm during meals, chattering about whatever thought had most recently stolen her mind.

Ontari’s gaze flicked toward the commander and general. Lexa’s expression was unreadable, though her eyes lingered on Marie with that soft edge she reserved only for her daughter. Anya looked almost satisfied, as though she finally saw strength in the child’s restraint.

But Ontari… felt only dread crawling into her gut.

Chapter 51: Chapter 295

Chapter Text

Lexa set her spoon down quietly, green eyes flicking to Marie. “You were humming earlier,” she said in that low, even tone that carried warmth beneath its control. “The lullaby I sung to you before.”

Marie’s head lifted a fraction. For a moment something flickered in her grey eyes—surprise, almost fear—but it was gone as quickly as it came. She offered the faintest of smiles, polite and small. “It helps me… remember to breathe,” she said carefully, as if she had rehearsed the words.

Lexa tilted her head, watching her daughter with quiet intensity. “Do you want to sing it with me later?”

The question should have lit Marie up, should have tugged a smile across her face, but instead she lowered her gaze back to her bowl, stirring the broth. “If… if there is time,” she answered almost begrudgingly.

Anya’s jaw twitched faintly, but she said nothing. Ontari, however, couldn’t tear her eyes from Marie. The girl’s voice had been too even, her answer too measured, like she had picked it from a list of correct responses rather than spoken her true feelings. She had come to associate Marie with spontaneous bursts of emotions, while the girl now appeared almost blank.

Lexa let the silence settle for a moment, lips parting as though she wanted to press further. Then she only inclined her head, forcing a small smile of her own. “There is always time.” Internally the commander wondered what may have given Marie the impression that she wouldn’t take the time for her daughter.

But Ontari thought she saw the way Lexa’s hand tightened ever so slightly on her cup, and the unease in her own chest deepened. She apparently wasn’t the only one who was sensing something off about Marie. If the commander wouldn’t press or say anything further, it surely wasn’t Ontari’s place to do so either.

When Marie normally carried the conversation over dinner, chirping about some happening of the day happily, wanting to keep Lexa informed about every small detail the brunette women had missed due her absence, Marie now said absolutely nothing.

Ontari watched the change with a deep frown. It wasn’t true that Marie was refusing to talk. If the commander or general asked her something, the younger girl did answer. But the answer seemed to be calculated words, a beat of a pause before she even answered at all. Her emotions nothing more than flickering ghosts on her features, hidden faster than Ontari could hope to identify them.

Her own dark eyes turned to Anya while she wondered just what could have brought this apparent change on. It wasn’t that the atmosphere during dinner was pressing. Silence was something Ontari was very well used to it, so, she didn’t mind too much if there was conversation flowing or if their utensils together with the low crackle of the fire were the only sounds. She knew Marie well enough though to wonder why the younger girl wasn’t filling the silence. Even on the way to the training grounds Marie had brought up Adria again. What could have transpired while she was at her own lesson to bring on this change? It was clear the blonde child wasn’t fearing a physical blow. The girl didn’t flinch when the general reached over the table close to Marie’s face in order to get more vegetables for herself.

Her own dark eyes didn’t leave Marie’s pale features, willing the younger girl to just meet her gaze. But the child seemed fully immersed in her meal. The honey cake one of the handmaidens had surely provided for the girl lay untouched next to her plate still. Ontari had seen a weird compromise between the general and Marie before regarding the small pastry. If Marie started with her normal meal, she was allowed to eat the cake as well. Ontari had watched the switch between the main course and the cake with utter bewilderment in the past. Marie had been happily eating the cake just a few days ago, smiling brightly at Lexa at each bite, while demonstrating to take more bites of the normal food to Anya.

Weirdly enough, when the girl set down her bowl, obviously finished the small honey cake remained untouched. Instead, Marie sat straight in between Lexa and Anya, had hands folded in her lap beneath the table where Ontari couldn’t see if the younger girl was twisting her fingers in agitation.

She didn’t seem to be the only one who noticed the untouched sweet treat still sitting next to Marie’s finished plate.

Ontari watched the commander abandon her own cup of tea, turning her full attention on Marie as well. Softness infused her green eyes visibly when she nudged the little girl gently. “You aren’t going to eat your honey cake, little star?”

Marie’s grey eyes flitted down to the pastry for a second, her mask wavering just the slightest bit. Still, her expression gave away nothing when she shook her head in the negative. “I am not hungry anymore.”

The knot of anticipation Ontari felt within her stomach only tightened at the hint of a frown settling on the commander’s features at the perfectly composed answer. She had noticed before that the usage of Marie’s nickname seemed to be deliberately done by the general and commander, either highlighting the gentleness of their words or trying to sooth their charge.

“She’s had more than enough sweet things for the day” Anya interjected a little too sharply. “She’s eaten nothing for breakfast beside these pastries.”

Marie didn’t give a verbal reaction. Her body language sharpened though and Ontari was almost certain now that something Anya must have said during the last hours had brought on this weird change in the younger girl.

“I could give it a go” Ontari offered into the too tense silence. Marie had tried getting her to taste test one of these pastries for weeks, but the nightblood had refused steadfastly. She tried to get a genuine reaction out of the younger girl and it seemed her attempt was working.

Marie’s features instantly became more easily readable again as honest surprise settled on her younger face. She immediately pushed the pastry in Ontari’s reaction, a soft smile tugging at her lips while her grey eyes watched the nightblood girl’s movements with eager anticipation.

Ontari accepted the honey cake with deliberate calm, though her stomach twisted. She brought the small pastry to her lips, biting into it with a warrior’s composure. The sweet, sticky taste filled her mouth—strange, cloying, nothing like the sharpness of Azgeda rations or the bitterness of Polis bread. She chewed slowly, watching Marie’s face all the while.

The younger girl leaned forward in anticipation; her lips parted as if she were about to demand a verdict. The mask was gone, stripped away by eagerness. Grey eyes shimmered with a spark Ontari had feared was lost.

“…It is tolerable,” Ontari said flatly after a pause, though the faint twitch at the corner of her mouth betrayed her.

Marie’s soft laugh bubbled out before she could stop it. Her small shoulders shook, and for an instant, she was herself again—unguarded, bright, utterly unconcerned by the weight of politics or training. The sound hit Lexa like sunlight breaking through clouds.

But as quickly as it came, the laugh faded. Marie straightened in her seat, folding her hands in her lap again as if she’d committed some error. She glanced sideways at Anya, who had stilled in her sharpening.

Anya’s eyes lingered on the child, unreadable. She didn’t comment, only resumed finishing her own food.

Lexa, however, leaned slightly toward her daughter. “Your laughter is not a mistake, little star,” she said softly, almost a murmur meant only for Marie. “It’s what I’ve missed most these past days.”

Marie’s gaze flickered up to meet hers. For a heartbeat, something trembled there—longing, ache, a storm pressed beneath the surface. Then her eyes dropped again to her lap. “I… will try to remember,” she whispered.

Ontari clenched her jaw, her unease returning full force. This wasn’t Marie trying to remember—this was Marie forcing herself into silence. Forcing herself into obedience. And that thought chilled her more than any Azgeda winter night.

The sight reminded her far too sharply of another time. A time where Marie’s fair skin had been littered with bruises, and the girl’s mask had been beaten onto her by the royal guard of Azgeda, perfected under Nia’s hand. Marie had learned back then how to answer with precisely the right words, how to move without drawing notice, how to survive by hiding herself.

And here, in Polis—safe in the commander’s own quarters—Ontari saw the same mask returning.

Her chest constricted. Back in Azgeda, Ontari couldn’t risk drawing Marie out. Too many eyes had always been on them, punishment looming over the slightest misstep. But here? What excuse was there for the silence, for the guarded posture, for the way Marie’s laughter vanished as though it had been a crime?

Why did it appear now as if Anya’s brown eyes were watching the child with the same measuring sharpness the guards once had?

The general’s face was unreadable, her gaze flicking to Marie too often to be casual. Pride? Expectation? Calculation? Ontari couldn’t tell. But it made the air around them taut, suffocating.

And Lexa—Lexa’s green eyes lingered with worry, but she didn’t move to shatter Marie’s façade either. Alarm, yes, but contained. Deliberately contained, as though the commander feared that pressing too hard might crack something that could not be mended.

Ontari’s throat felt dry. She was missing something—something vital. There was a weight in the room she couldn’t decipher, threads of conversation and decision that had already been spun in her absence. She hated it. She hated the quiet, the way Marie sat so small and still in between them, as if she were waiting for judgment.

Her hand curled around her cup, knuckles whitening. If neither commander nor general would act, then how long could she watch before stepping in herself?

Anya’s voice pierced through the silence. The words weren’t addressed to Marie, but rather to Ontari. “I expect you to learn something from the journey to the Rockline Clan,” the general said sharply. “You haven’t been on political missions like this before?”

Ontari shook her head in the negative. No, never. Her service to Nia had been blood, not words—skirmishes on borders, the razing of villages meant to silence whispers of rebellion before they could grow. She remembered the acrid stench of smoke, the screams swallowed by snow. That was what Azgeda had called a statement.

This—this was different. To be chosen to stand beside the general on a mission of diplomacy meant more than fear and fire. It meant trust. The thought set a flicker of pride alight in her chest. She had been noticed. She had been judged capable.

But when her dark eyes fell on Marie’s small figure across from her, the pride curdled. The girl sat straight-backed and still, hands folded in her lap beneath the table, her pale face carved into an expression of perfect neutrality. Waiting, Ontari realized. Marie was simply waiting—waiting to be dismissed, waiting for the next command.

No spark of relief at the prospect of leaving Polis. No burst of protest at the thought of being separated from Lexa. Not even a flicker of those bright grey eyes that usually betrayed every passing thought.

The pride in Ontari’s chest sizzled into something colder. What good was trust, what good was honour, if it left Marie like this?

She would trade it all away—this mission, the general’s approval, every scrap of recognition Polis could ever offer her—if it meant Marie could feel safe again.

Lexa set her own utensils down, her eyes lingering on her daughter. The tension in her jaw eased as she drew in a steadying breath, softening her voice deliberately. “Why don’t we move to the couch after dinner? We can read together. I can do the special voices for you again.”

The faintest flicker crossed Marie’s pale face—an almost imperceptible hesitation. Her grey eyes darted to the commander’s, and for half a heartbeat Ontari thought she saw a spark, a flash of the girl who usually lit up at such an offer.

But just as quickly the light dimmed. Marie lowered her gaze, fingers smoothing over her folded napkin with mechanical care. “I… should continue the Trigedasleng book from before,” she said evenly. “I need the practice.”

Ontari’s chest tightened. She remembered all too clearly Marie’s groaning complaints about those dense texts, about the pounding headaches and frustration they caused. The girl had nearly fallen asleep over the pages more than once, only to perk back up whenever Lexa took pity and swapped to the story with wizards and broomsticks.

Lexa stilled, studying her. “You don’t want to continue with Harry Potter tonight?” she asked gently, her tone full of that quiet patience she reserved only for Marie.

Marie shook her head quickly, too quickly. “The practice is important,” she murmured, the words clipped, rehearsed. Ontari thought she saw the child’s shoulders tighten ever so slightly, as though bracing for correction.

The commander did not press further, though her lips curved into a smile that didn’t quite reach her eyes. “Very well. We’ll read your Trigedasleng book then.”

To anyone else, the exchange might have looked harmless. But to Ontari, the hollowness of it felt like a crack in the air.

Dinner finished quickly after that. Anya called Ontari towards one of the tables holding a large map of the lands of the coalition. The general wanted to map out a route for their journey.

Lexa sat with Marie on the couch, sitting close enough for their daughter to lean against her or reach out to get some kind of physical contact. For a reason the commander couldn’t identify the girl remained rigid and upright beside her.

The huge book was balanced once again on Marie’s lap and the child took great effort in deciphering the written Trigedasleng. Her pronunciation was almost perfect, although she still had difficulties identifying every part of the writing system and faltered at times.

Lexa followed the lines the girl was reading closely, offering gentle correction when the child stumbled over symbols, she wasn’t familiar with yet. It was clear Marie was making good progress and Lexa still internally wished to reach out and replace the book with one for entertainment. When Marie’s features started to crack under the strain of concentration and she was looking down on the text with narrowed eyes as if the focus hurt physically, Lexa gently offered Marie to switch activities.

To her utter consternation the girl shook her head. “You’ve probably still got loads of reports to read through” her grey eyes flicked to the numerous scrolls still lying untouched on one of the tables. “I am tired” she proclaimed, clearly with the intent of going to bed early.

Lexa’s brows drew together at that. The words sounded too deliberate, too… practiced. Usually, the girl only went to bed without discussions if she was sick. She tilted her head, studying her daughter’s pale features, the slight downturn of her mouth that didn’t quite match her tone.

“You don’t want me to read to you tonight?” Lexa asked softly. It wasn’t an accusation, but a gentle invitation, the kind she knew usually coaxed Marie to curl against her side.

Marie’s hands tightened around the heavy book, knuckles whitening under the strain. “You’ve done enough today,” she said quickly, her voice steady but flat, like a shield raised to block something. “I’ll just sleep.”

The commander’s chest ached at the words. You’ve done enough today. Since when had Marie ever cared about her burden? Usually, the child had clung to her, soaking in every moment they had together as if afraid Lexa might vanish if she let go.

“Sleep then, little star” Lexa murmured, though the tenderness in her tone carried a thread of unease. She leaned down, brushing a kiss to the crown of Marie’s blonde hair, expecting her daughter to fold into the touch.

But Marie only sat there, spine straight, eyes downcast. Rigid.

Lexa lingered a heartbeat longer, willing the girl to move, to be herself. When she didn’t, Lexa forced herself to release a quiet breath and let her go.

Across the room, Ontari’s dark gaze flicked from the map to the couch. Her stomach twisted as she saw the commander’s arm drop back into her lap, empty, while Marie rose to excuse herself without even reaching for Lexa’s hand.

Marie slipped beneath the heavy furs that still carried Lexa’s faint, grounding scent. Normally, the cocoon of warmth was enough to soothe her, but tonight the bed felt empty. She turned onto her side, eyes wide open in the dim flicker of the hearth, listening to the muffled sounds of Anya’s low voice across the room as she and Ontari finished discussing the map. Lexa had remained on the couch, indeed opening the next scroll holding another report.

Her body was heavy with exhaustion, but her mind refused to still. The mantras whispered again: No weakness. No mistakes. Do better. She just wished to make them to proud, to be enough.

At last, her eyelids sagged, and for a handful of breaths she drifted—until the shadows in her mind twisted. She was back in the City of Light, glass shattering across endless streets, Alie’s voice bleeding into Nia’s. You will never be enough, my dumb little girl.

Marie jolted awake with a sharp gasp, heart pounding. The furs tangled around her legs like grasping hands. She shoved at them, whimpering before she could bite it back.

“Marie.” Lexa was beside her instantly, the mattress dipping as strong arms pulled her upright. Marie clung to her instinctively, fingers curling into Lexa’s soft shirt, trembling as if the nightmare still clung to her skin.

“Shh. I’ve got you. You’re safe.” Lexa’s voice was low and steady, the way it always was when she comforted her daughter. She rocked the girl gently, hand stroking through damp strands of blonde hair.

But instead of relaxing, Marie stiffened. “I’m sorry,” she whispered hoarsely, eyes shut tight against her mother’s shoulder. “I didn’t mean to disturb you. I shouldn’t—I shouldn’t still have nightmares.”

Lexa drew back just enough to look at her, confusion and sorrow knitting across her brow. “You have nothing to apologize for, little star. Nightmares aren’t weakness. They are only shadows of what you’ve lived through.”

Tears ran down Marie’s cheeks, and her grip on Lexa’s shirt tightened almost desperately. Her words broke between sobs: “I want to make you proud, Mommy. I’ll try harder, I promise. I don’t want you to send me away.”

Across the room, Ontari half-rose from her seat, alarm flashing over her features. But Anya’s hand closed around her arm, firm. “Bed,” the general ordered quietly, her eyes never leaving the fragile scene on the bed. After a moment’s hesitation, Ontari obeyed, slipping out of the commander’s quarters silently, though her dark eyes lingered on Marie until the door shut behind her.

Lexa cupped Marie’s tear-streaked face between her hands, tilting it upward. Her own chest ached at the desperation in those grey eyes. “Marie… listen to me.” Her voice was thick with emotion, carefully leashed. “I am already proud of you. Nothing could make me send you away. Nothing.”

But the child shook her head, sobs hiccupping through her chest. She couldn’t say what she’d overheard, couldn’t admit the cruel words still echoing in her skull. To speak them out loud felt like admitting their truth.

“Tell me what’s really gotten you so upset,” Lexa urged softly, brushing a thumb across her cheek. “Please. Don’t keep this inside.”

Marie’s lips parted, but only a whimper came out. She buried her face back into her mother’s neck, refusing the question. Her tears came harder then, soaking into Lexa’s soft shirt as she let herself melt against the commander’s solid warmth.

Lexa held her tighter, rocking her gently. “Sssh, everything is going to be alright, little star,” she whispered into the crown of blonde hair. “You don’t need to be strong every moment.”

For a few precious minutes, Marie allowed herself that. Allowed herself to be weak again, to be held, soothed, kissed on the temple until her sobs dwindled into shuddering breaths.

But even as her eyelids grew heavy again, a whisper cut through the haze: This is weakness too. She remembered vividly how the royal guard had punished her for nightmares, for crying or for letting Ontari sooth her during the night occasionally.

Her fingers uncurled slowly from Lexa’s soft shirt, resting limp in her lap. She told herself this would be the last time. Tomorrow, she would not reach out again. She would not cry. She would make them proud.

With her cheek pressed against her mother’s chest, Marie closed her eyes and let the warmth lull her back toward sleep—her resolve hardening even as her body softened into slumber.

Chapter 52: Chapter 296

Chapter Text

Ontari lingered in front of the door to the commander’s quarters for long silent moments. She felt the eyes of the guards lying on her heavily.

The journey the general was planning for them would probably have them on the roads for around a full moon cycle before they would return to Polis.

She wasn’t convinced separating Marie from Lexa right now was the right decision. It was clear that her mentor did not want her to interfere. The way she had send her off to bed immediately once Marie woke from a nightmare couldn’t have been made clearer.

Ontari could imagine well enough what was going on behind that closed door right at this moment. She didn’t understand her own feelings. On the one hand, she had almost relief at seeing Marie express any kind of true emotion. On the other hand, she had wished it was herself the younger girl would seek solace from, not the commander.

“Was there something else you needed?” one of the guards pulled her from her thoughts with the gruff question. She could sense their unease at her lingering in front of the commander’s quarters.

Without another word Ontari turned on her heel and walked towards the elevator. She knew there was nothing she could for Marie right now, but she vowed to herself to look out for the younger girl once they left the capitol.

~ ~ ~

When Marie woke the next morning, her body indeed hurt in places from the hard training of the previous day. She could already feel the tenseness in her muscles.

The room wasn’t cast in darkness any longer and it seemed the sun must have risen a while ago already. Lexa and Anya were already sitting at the table, eating breakfast.

Marie sighed slightly under her breath. She didn’t know why her mothers had obviously let her sleep in, but it didn’t appear as a fitting start into the day. The feeling of starting failure settled like sizzling dread in her stomach.

Risha leaping up onto the bed unannounced stopped Marie’s spiraling dread. “Hey, girl” she greeted the wolf in a hushed whisper, reaching out her fingers to stroke over the wolf’s soft muzzle. The wolf’s light blue eyes seemed to regard her questioningly for a moment, before the wolf nudged at her hand, obviously trying to get her to pet her fully or hug her, like she normally would in greeting.

“You’re awake” Lexa had stood from the table and walked back towards the bed, looking at the blonde girl with a gentle expression on her features.

Marie hesitated visibly when Lexa offered a hand to her and even though the girl let herself be pulled from the bed by the commander, she immediately severed the physical contact once she stood on her own feet.

“When is the meeting going to be?” was the first thing Marie asked even before the commander could say anything else. Her tone was measure, feigning interest while her expression was of the same eerily calm, she had worn the previous day.

“A while after breakfast” Lexa answered with a frown. She had hoped that the girl would have worked through whatever was bothering her during the night. It obviously wasn’t the case. She didn’t know if this was the way their daughter was truly starting to work through her trauma, but she could only hope now that this was indeed the case.

Lexa watched the child go to the bathroom with a hint of disappointment. She felt as if she was dealing with a different version of their daughter now. She had come to love the girl’s bubbly personality and she didn’t mind soothing the child when she had a nightmare. Without her memories the girl had been suspicious and angry. Now, she was suspiciously polite and withdrawn, where she had been bubbly and expressive before. Was the girl only growing up faster because they continued to push her too much?

She could feel the weight of Anya’s gaze resting on her from across the room. The “I told you so” was heavy in the air without being voice audibly.

They waited in silence for Marie to return from the bathroom.

Once Marie finally joined them, the girl’s movements all seemed measured, slow, as if she didn’t want to appear too eager. Marie’s stomach clenched at the sight of the food. She didn’t argue when Anya pushed a cup of tea in her direction silently.

She sat down next to Lexa at the table with only the faintest hint of a smile on her features. She thought she had done a notable job at braiding her own hair. It wasn’t exactly the style Alira had designed for her, but she guessed it resembled it close enough to pass.

Lexa noted the girl’s styled hair for a moment. Gently she reached out towards the girl and tilted her chin upwards, turning her head gently so she could inspect the whole design.

“Well done, little star” she praised the child honestly.

Marie kept still under her mother’s probing gaze, straightening her back during the inspection. She felt a flash of warmth settle in her chest at the praise. Still, internally she tried to smother it down before it really took root. She had braided her hair in Azgeda as well. Echo had been very impatient during the instructions with her, tugging at her hair harshly when she didn’t grasp the movements fast enough to replicate it. She knew braiding hair wasn’t anything to be praised about. Anya had been confused that she didn’t know how to do this in the past as well, although the general had been far more understanding than Echo. She knew she had to do more to prove to her mothers that she wasn’t going to be a liability.

The child only inclined her head at the praise, taking it in silently. Her features remained carefully blank, and Lexa felt the distance grow between them. Usually, the girl would beam brightly at every little bit of praise that was offered to her or ask unsurely if she had disappointed them when there was no praise. The commander still remembered how volatile Marie had reacted when Anya had allowed the girl to practice braiding hair on the general’s hair. When there had been no apparent reaction, Marie had automatically assumed the worst and cried.

Lexa hadn’t really expected the child to throw her arms around her neck. Although now that she contemplated the girl’s missing obvious reaction, she would have by far preferred to deepen their contact. She let go of the girl’s chin finally, missing the warmth beneath the tips of her fingers immediately.

While Lexa still considered what to say in order to coax the little girl out of shell, Anya’s voice spoke up. Firm, decisively. “Hurry up with breakfast, Marie. We should be in the throne room in a bit.”

Lexa’s lips thinned slightly as she cast a reproachful glance at her former mentor. No meeting would be starting without the commander’s presence. They could afford to linger at the table at least a little while longer. Still, Marie immediately nodded briskly, taking up her spoon obediently and starting to eat her porridge without any kind of protest.

“Don’t you want some honey or berries with your porridge, little star?” Lexa tried to coax some reaction from the girl subtly. Normally, Marie would reach out for some additions to the admittedly bland porridge immediately. Lexa didn’t understand why the girl wasn’t doing so now.

Marie’s grey eyes only briefly flicked up to the commander’s features. Lexa could read nothing there and she wasn’t surprised when the child slightly shook her head in denial of her offer. The grey eyes remained carefully guarded, uncharacteristically for their daughter behind the doors of their quarters. Lexa bit back a sigh. She had grown so used to the child’s constant chatter and her openly displayed attachment to them that this weird new distance felt unexpectedly sharp.

“She’s doing well choosing the healthier option” Anya chipped in with a hint of strictness in her tone. Lexa’s brows furrowed slightly. She had never seen a real harm in letting their daughter indulge on a few sweet things now and then. Anya obviously had a different opinion there. On their upcoming journey there wouldn’t be any opportunities for sweet treats like this and the general thought it better if the girl started to get used to it, before she would whine during the whole journey about the bad food.

Lexa’s eyes narrowed down on her former mentor. She could still remember how the general had frowned at her when she started getting honey cakes from the markets in Polis just to have a small treat for Costia. So, the reaction shouldn’t surprise her now.

The commander regarded the little girl sitting rigidly between them at the table in deep contemplation, trying to analyze her changed behavior. If she didn’t know any better the girl would be the perfect picture of composure. Marie sat with her back straight, head slightly bowed, concentrated fully on her food, not making any disturbing noise. The only thing which slightly destroyed the picture was the child suddenly pulling her sleeve down quickly where it had begun to ride up her thin arm and the way her grey eyes shortly flitted between them as if checking if the tiny crack in her composure had been noted.

Lexa’s frown deepened at the tiny motion of Marie tugging down her sleeve. The gesture was too sharp, too deliberate, and her daughter’s eyes too quick in their darting check. She had seen that look before—in war councils, on warriors desperate to make their armor sit perfectly, to conceal nerves or fear. Not in a child. Not in Marie.

“Little star,” she tried again softly, angling her head, “you don’t need to sit so stiffly. This is your home. You’re safe here.”

Marie froze for a heartbeat, spoon hovering above her bowl. Then, with deliberate calm, she lowered it and set it neatly down against the rim. “I am comfortable,” she said, voice smooth and quiet.

Lexa felt the words like ice water slipping down her spine. It was too perfect, too measured. She opened her mouth to try and reassure the child once more, but Anya didn’t let her.

“She’s showing discipline,” the general interrupted flatly, her brown eyes fixed on Marie with something dangerously close to approval. “If she means to accompany us into the throne room, better she learns it here than in front of the ambassadors.”

The commander’s jaw tightened. Discipline. The word rattled unpleasantly in her chest. Was that all Anya saw? Was that what Marie was trying to become—disciplined, poised, silent—because she thought it was what they wanted?

Risha whined softly under the table, nudging her muzzle against Marie’s leg. For a moment, the girl’s composure wavered. Her lips parted, her grey eyes softened, but then she smoothed her trousers with careful fingers, staring back down at her porridge as though nothing had happened.

Lexa reached out as if to touch her shoulder, to coax her into letting that softness linger. But Anya rose from the table with crisp finality.

“Enough. Finish your meal, Marie. We should be preparing. There will be no room for hesitation before the coalition.”

Marie immediately took another spoonful, silent and obedient. Lexa withdrew her hand, the ache in her chest tightening as she watched the girl chew and swallow with almost mechanical precision.

She looked nothing like the child who used to beam at the taste of berries, or sneak Risha crumbs under the table, giggling when the wolf licked her fingers. She looked like someone else entirely.

Before the commander had made up her mind on how to reach out to their daughter, Marie pushed the bowl from her, obviously finished.

Anya’s eyes narrowed slightly on it. “You’re still not eating enough” the general criticized the child sharply.

Marie seemed to try to hide her small wince and her eyes were downcast on the floor when she inclined her head, taking the critic in without arguing.

Lexa’s stomach tightened. Normally the child may argue that her stomach wasn’t feeling well, she seemed to have no intention of defending herself now.

Neither did Anya give her any opportunity to. The general motioned Marie over to where the child’s light armor was waiting for her.

“I can do it” Marie quickly offered before Anya could reach out to the first piece.

Lexa watched the girl donning her armor with a deepening frown. The armor was more of a statement than real protection, still, watching the child putting it on in with quiet efficiency, her small frame becoming increasingly rigid with every addition suddenly felt all wrong to the commander.

Lexa’s hands twitched faintly at her sides, aching to intervene, to help buckle the straps or adjust the leather at Marie’s shoulders like she used to. But the girl’s posture was too stiff, too determined, and each buckle clicked into place with the grim precision of ritual.

Piece by piece, her daughter vanished beneath the armor until all that was left was a small soldier—chin lifted, eyes carefully downcast, silence her shield.

Lexa’s throat tightened. She remembered other mornings, when Marie had whined that the chestplate pinched, when she had begged for help tying her boots because the laces tangled in her small fingers, when she had leaned against Lexa’s side giggling at her own crooked attempts. Those mornings had felt like victories—her child alive, safe, unafraid to need them.

This—this was not victory. This was surrender.

“You missed a strap,” Anya said flatly, stepping forward to tighten the leather across Marie’s side with brisk, impersonal hands. “Attention to detail, Marie. Mistakes get people killed.”

Marie didn’t flinch. She didn’t argue. Only murmured, “Yes, General,” in a tone so obedient it sent a chill down Lexa’s spine.

The commander’s green eyes flicked sharply to Anya, a warning flashing there, but her mentor only gave the barest shrug—as if this was progress, not a wound being carved deeper.

Lexa inhaled slowly, forcing her voice soft. “Little star, your armor doesn’t need to make you into something you are not.”

Marie froze for half a heartbeat at the words, her small fingers tightening around the last buckle. Then, just as quickly, she smoothed her expression into blank composure. “It helps me remember to be strong,” she whispered, not looking up.

Lexa felt the words land like stones in her chest. She watched Marie fall into step beside her former mentor almost reluctantly. Everything within her urged to call the child back, cradle in her arms and try to remind her that softness wasn’t a sin within their quarters. Still, she didn’t, instead she watched Anya and their daughter leave in tense silence. The ambassadors wouldn’t care for the internal war raging through her mind, they would pounce on weakness if they smelled even the faintest hint of it. She pulled her own mask forward, letting her regret be replaced by unbreakable hardness while she waited for Anya and Marie to reach the throne room alone, she would follow them in a few moments.

~ ~ ~

Ontari hadn’t slept very well. Marie’s performance at dinner had left her restless. In the queen’s fortress she had at least spent most nights together with the younger girl, being able to try and offer her support there. Now, she was left clueless on what might have transpired during the previous night.

If she had hoped to be reunited with the deeply expressive version of Marie, Ontari was left deeply disappointed.

Her dark eyes turned to the elevator immediately when it opened. The general and Marie came alone. On first glance of Marie, it was clear already how rigid and expressionless the younger girl carried herself.

“Have you finished packing?” was the general’s efficient way of greeting her. They would depart for the start of their journey almost immediately after the meeting with the ambassadors.

Ontari immediately inclined her head. She hadn’t been asked to join breakfast in the commander’s quarters, so, she had been left with enough time to prepare what she needed. She could guess that handmaidens would be preparing luggage for the general and Marie during the actual meeting.

Still, her eyes strayed back to the girl at Anya’s side. Marie’s pale face was composed, her grey eyes lowered, her steps too measured for a child. Ontari felt unease twist in her stomach. This wasn’t the girl who had teased her about honey cakes or dragged her to sit by the hearth to read. This was… something else. A mask, brittle and suffocating.

Anya didn’t seem disturbed. If anything, she looked faintly approving, her long strides cutting the way forward without pause. The general had always valued discipline, Ontari knew. Perhaps to her this was progress.

To Ontari, it felt like loss.

She fell into step behind them, her fists clenching by her sides. She wanted to say something, to catch Marie’s gaze, to tug her back toward herself if only for a heartbeat—but the girl didn’t look at her. Didn’t look at anyone.

The elevator rattled as it carried them down toward the great hall. Ontari’s eyes flicked once more to Marie’s small figure, standing straight between steel and leather, looking far too much like a soldier already.

The doors opened to the hushed murmur of the throne room beyond. Guards straightened, ambassadors already gathering in wary clusters.

Anya strode forward without hesitation, Marie shadowing her every step. Ontari followed, the unease in her chest tightening.

And then the great doors groaned open again—Lexa entering last.

Her presence was a storm contained, green eyes sharp as blades, her expression unreadable behind the mask of command. Only Ontari, watching closely, saw the flicker in her gaze as it landed on Marie. Regret, buried instantly beneath steel.

The commander crossed the distance with measured strides, and Ontari felt the air of the hall shift—every whisper dying, every head turning toward the throne.

The game was beginning. And Ontari couldn’t shake the dread that Marie, masked and silent beside the general, was about to be tested more harshly than any of them expected.

Things had happened so quickly, that Ontari could even understand the suspicious eyes landing on Marie’s small rigid form next to Anya. First Marie’s mysterious disappearance from the hunting trip, Ontari doubted details had even been shared with the ambassadors beside the fact that the commander’s second had been abducted and brought to Nia. Then Marie’s prolonged absence from Polis, her cut off braids having been sent by the Ice Queen. Ontari had watched the fury and mourning intermingle in the commander and general before during the longs weeks of not knowing if Marie lived or had been killed. Ontari had left the capitol in the chaos, knowing Marie to be most likely still alive. So, she hadn’t seen the immediate aftermath. The declaration of war against Azgeda had been issued while they had still been with Queen Nia. Still, suspicions had already grown against Marie at her unexpected return to the capitol, so, clearly changed from the innocent girl from before. People had never been told of Marie’s memory loss. The war against Azgeda and shortly after the commander and general traveling alone with Marie. The girl returned apparently cured of her secret disease and what felt like just a few days after the weird technology threat so clearly linked to Skykru. For how could such a threat be linked to another clan of the coalition?

Now, the girl didn’t sit, like a perfect second was supposed to. She remained standing beside the general, pale chin lifted just enough to signal alertness, eyes fixed ahead on a point of the wall. She looked carved from ice. No fidgeting. No wandering gaze. Not even the slight restlessness that had always marked her before.

And it worked. The room quieted with approval. Ontari saw how some of the ambassadors gave small nods, how a few mouths curved faintly as though satisfied that the commander’s second was finally embodying discipline instead of childish chatter. Marie was playing her role flawlessly.

Almost too flawlessly.

Her posture was so rigid that Ontari could see the tension trembling faintly in her small hands where they rested at her sides. Her jaw was locked a heartbeat too tightly. When Anya shifted, speaking a formal greeting, Marie’s grey eyes flicked sideways—not long enough to break the illusion, but enough that Ontari caught it. A quick check. A flash of uncertainty beneath the mask.

Anyone else would call it perfection. Ontari felt her stomach knot. Because she remembered this look, this stillness. She had seen it in the Azgeda fortress before: children forced into silence and masks; bodies held upright by fear rather than pride.

Marie’s voice, when Anya gave her a short line to repeat in Trigedasleng, came out steady. Clear. No stumble, no hesitation. The room approved. Ontari’s chest only tightened further.

Marie internally found it hard to follow the meeting. She wasn’t truly interested in the ongoing politics, and she had to focus all her strength on upholding her composure. Her body felt taut with tension and her muscles already ached from the rigid way she carried herself.

Lexa’s voice sounded different in the throne room. Harder and almost alien. Marie’s mind replayed the morning, the many instances in which her mommy had offered her tenderness in her subtle way. She regretted now that she hadn’t let herself melt against her strength. She knew once the meeting was called to an end, they would have to leave the throne room, taking the elevator to their horses. Although she hadn’t listened to Anya and Ontari plan their route of travel, she knew that they would be gone from the capitol for weeks.

Marie’s throat felt clogged all of a sudden and her grey eyes flitted to the commander for a second too long. Her hands had the faintest tremble next to her body and Marie looked away again, reenforcing motionlessness into her limbs. She could do this; she wouldn’t disappoint them.

For a heartbeat she imagined walking forward, tugging at Lexa’s hand, begging for just a moment on the balcony. She knew her mommy would grant it. But she could not allow herself such weakness now.

When the meeting ended, Marie moved like clockwork—bowing at the right time, keeping her expression smooth while the ambassadors filed from the room. She felt Anya’s sharp gaze lingering, weighing her, and she prayed silently the general would not find her lacking. She had given her best.

Almost without warning, Lexa stepped before her. The commander bent and pressed a gentle kiss to her daughter’s forehead, ignoring the presence of guards. “Travel well, little star,” she murmured, her voice soft in a way that cut through every wall Marie had built. “And come back safely.”

For one dangerous instant, Marie’s composure cracked. Her chest squeezed at the scent of her mother’s skin, the warmth of lips at her brow. She swallowed hard, inhaled sharply, and inclined her head with rigid precision. “Yes, Commander,” she answered, the words scraping her throat.

Ontari’s eyes narrowed slightly as Marie stepped away, back at her side. Was she imagining the shimmer in those grey eyes? Whatever it was, Marie hadn’t lifted her arms to cling, hadn’t whispered a word of farewell. The lack of touch felt wrong, unbearably wrong.

Anya inclined her head only once. “I will keep them safe,” the general said formally, before turning and ushering both girls toward the door.

Marie’s heart thudded painfully as the throne room doors shut behind them, cutting her off from Lexa’s green eyes. Regret pressed down so heavily she could barely breathe. She had let every chance slip by—hadn’t sung, hadn’t laughed, hadn’t even leaned into that kiss.

Her thoughts grew desperate, poisonous as she walked in silence beside Anya and Ontari. Would it be easier for her mommy if she didn’t return at all?

Chapter 53: Chapter 297

Chapter Text

The silence in the throne room hung heavily once the large doors were closed behind the general and the two girls. Lexa did not move immediately. She remained standing rooted in the same spot. Her hands rested loosely at her sides, staring at the space where their daughter had just stood. A small part of her envied Anya of the weeks she would have travelling with the child alone.

Her mind replayed their short farewell in agonizing detail, trying to analyze what had just happened. Marie’s stiff bow with the perfect composure, like she indeed was nothing more than a formal second to her. “Yes Commander” the clipped answer in a tone far to unmoved for the little girl. The shimmer of unshed tears, the only crack in the façade Lexa had been privy to. The commander hadn’t allowed herself to reach out and wipe them away.

There hadn’t been a “mommy” uttered once, not even an “I’ll miss you”. Lexa knew without any doubt that she would miss the child terribly. She knew how empty and silent her quarters had felt when the child had been abducted and missing from Polis for half a year. Of course, the situation was different now. She knew the girl had left with Anya and Ontari, together with a small entourage of her most trusted soldiers. Their daughter would be protected physically as well as they could organize. And still, it felt to Lexa as if she had just parted with a vital piece of herself. Although barely a moment had passed since she last had seen and touched the child, the ache of missing her settled deeply in her chest.

Now she wished that she had dismissed the guards, pulled the little girl into her arms, if needed even with force, and held onto her until the child’s mask would have slipped, showing the vulnerable loving child beneath it again. But she had not. Duty had stilled her hand and now, now it was too late. Lexa already hoped for the power to turn time faster until she could hold her daughter again.

The silence around her stretched, suffocating, until the creak of the great doors being opened again disturbed it. Lexa straightened almost on instinct. She recognized the pattern of the footsteps, without having to turn around and look who had entered.

The flamekeeper only bowed slightly. “Heda” he greeted her, stepping closer to her. His expression disapproving as he looked through the almost deserted throne room.

“Titus” Lexa returned in an even tone although her green eyes slightly narrowed. She sensed he was here to disagree with her decisions again. The way he carried himself already giveaway enough of his internal agenda.

The flamekeepers gaze shortly flitted back to the closed doors. “The child is gone” he assessed with clear displeasure coloring his tone.

Lexa clenched her jaw. She knew fairly well that the flamekeeper didn’t care one bit for her daughter, only cared about her function for the flame. “I have sent the general on a political mission to the Rockline Clan, Marie and Ontari accompany her.”

Titus’s dark eyes hardened. “Was that really wise, commander? There is unrest among the clans. With her away, the sacred gift she carries is beyond your reach. If an assassin manages to get too close the chance to be healed would be too far away.”

Lexa stood straighter on instinct, glaring at the flamekeeper in growing annoyance. “That is not your concern.”

“It is the concern of the flame” Titus pressed on with sharp eyes, ignoring the commander’s increasing signs of anger. “The girl is not just your ward. She is the vessel to a power we do not understand. A power useful to the flame and line of succession. She must remain by your side, as a protector, as…”

Lexa didn’t let him finish and her green eyes flashed dangerously at her former teacher. “She’ll remain by my side as nothing but the child I claimed as my daughter!” She stepped closer to the older man, power infusing every pore of her body and her whole poise blazed with cold fury. “You will not reduce her to a mere tool. Not under my watch. Not ever!”

For once Titus didn’t bow down yet. “You may call her your daughter, but even you cannot deny the power she carries. The flame entrusted her with a gift for the good of all clans, not for your sentiment alone.”

Lexa felt something in her snap. They had no idea where the girl’s talent stemmed from, neither was it important. If Titus wanted to believe that it came from the flame, she would not argue with him. If Ontari rose as the next commander after her, Lexa even thought if likely that the blonde child would remain as a second to the next commander, being able to heal the nightblood girl as well. The connection between the girls seemed deep enough to come to that conclusion. Still, what the flamekeeper insinuated came dangerously close to making the child’s talent public at some kind, linking her to the flame irrevocably. She’d rather die than let her daughter be labelled as a tool to power.

“Enough!” Lexa’s tone was as cold as ice as it pierced through the tense silence between them. “Marie is a child. MY child. And she will not be bound to me by your fears or your faith. She will not be a prisoner in Polis.”

The flamekeeper’s jaw tensed visibly and Titus seemed to internally weigh his chances of continuing this argument. He seemed to concede defeat and sharply inclined his head. “As you command, Heda.” His voice did nothing to conceal his internal disagreement and his bow was even lighter as he dismissed himself from the throne room.

Lexa exhaled deeply once she was alone in the throne room once more. She willed some of the tension to drain from her body when she noticed just how firmly her hands had been balled to angry fists at her side. She crossed through the room with intent, the footsteps echoing loudly through the vast hall. She pushed the door to the balcony open with more force than necessary. The residual glass panes in the doors rattled in protest at the force. The wind which blew over her face once she stepped outside was a welcome sensation, cooling off some of her anger as her gaze involuntarily travelled in the direction, she knew Anya would be taking with their daughter and Ontari.

Her fingers grasped onto the stone railing until her knuckles were white beneath her skin. Her chest felt tight with the lingering ache of regret. She had let the child go without holding onto her once more.

~ ~ ~

Ontari watched Marie get acquainted with the horse which had been chosen personally by the commander vigilantly.

The child held out her open palm mutely, letting the mount sniff at her fingers, waiting for the horse’s reaction.

Marie’s lips tugged into the ghost of a smile when the horse blew out its’ breath, tickling her slightly.

Although Ontari watched the scene, what she didn’t see struck with her more deeply. There was no loud laughter, no reaching out to pet the horse. Ontari had been at the stables with Marie often enough to know just how well the younger girl enjoyed the company of the animals.

“Have you settled on a name for it during the journey?” Ontari asked kindly, pulling the girl’s attention from the horse while her dark eyes remained on the blonde girl. She still remembered how Marie had taken days to settle on a name for the foal the commander had gifted her.

Marie just opened her mouth to retort something when Anya appeared behind her. “The horse doesn’t need one of your ridiculous names” she said in a steely tone “It already has one, Ona”.

Marie’s expression wavered only for a moment, her breath hitching audibly. A little flinch hidden at the sharp comment, a downturn on her mouth concealed as her lips pressed into a thin line forcefully. “I will use it” she answered in an even tone, meeting the general’s gaze steadfastly.

Ontari’s eyes narrowed at the general and she felt fury bubble in her blood. She could imagine Marie would have chosen another admittedly comical name for a war horse. But this behavior had fitted Marie so well, that basically prohibiting her from displaying it felt unnecessarily cruel to the nightblood girl.

The general seemed to catch on to her mood without Ontari having to say anything. The austere woman’s features showed a silent warning not to overstep her authority here and Ontari swallowed down her discontent. She didn’t know if Anya was blind to Marie’s weird behavior or if thought it necessary to force the child into hardening all of a sudden.

She promised to herself to keep watch over the younger girl and try to look for a chance to talk to Anya privately, where speaking up against her wouldn’t automatically mean defying her mentor, but merely giving voice to her concern for Marie.

Marie managed to mount the horse without any aid. She knew its name translated to “moon” and she could guess the name had been chosen because of the silvery hue of its shiny coat. Just for a brief moment she reached out and touched its silvery mane, feeling the softness beneath her fingers, before she took hold of the reigns more firmly.

She looked back over her shoulder towards the tower one last time with an unreadable expression on her pale features. She guessed Risha would be with Lexa now. She had tentatively asked Anya if the wolf could come along, but unfortunately not all horses of their party tolerated the animal’s presence. So, Risha had to stay behind in Polis. She guessed this way Lexa would at least have Risha for company during their absence. Lexa had told her before how the wolf had started living with her while she had been with Queen Nia. She felt her throat tighten at the thought of Lexa and Risha together. She hadn’t voiced it out loud, but she already missed them.

She looked over the party who would travel with them. Ontari’s eyes were resting on her heavily and Marie sighed internally. It seemed that Anya was satisfied with the way she was acting. It confused her though why the nightblood girl seemed hyper vigilant now. Hadn’t Ontari told her before as well that she acted like an untrained child at times?

Ontari noted the girl’s almost regretful look back at the tower and for a tiny moment she felt jealousy curdle in her stomach. It was clear the younger girl was most likely thinking about Lexa. She could only assume now what exactly Marie was thinking. Was she regretting not having said proper goodbyes? Ontari clenched her teeth. For a moment she wondered how Marie would react if she were to offer her own arms in a comforting embrace. She highly doubted the girl would take her up on it. But still, she wished she could offer that kind of gentleness to Marie and for the younger girl to find the offer enough. Ontari faltered slightly at the internal realization that she actually longed to be the one the younger girl turned to when she needed comfort.

Anya tightened her grip on the reins of her brown mount. The way Ontari kept on watching Marie irked her. It wasn’t the nightblood’s job to look out for Marie, especially not questioning her parenting style. Anya knew she was being hard on Marie, far harder than she had ever been before. But the way the girl flinched and faltered during training undeniably drove the message home that they were failing in their responsibility as Marie’s mothers. The way the atmosphere in the coalition had shifted, there was no way of telling just how long Lexa’s reign would continue. It had been illusion to think they would be able to protect the child by coddling her, allowing her endless amounts of softness. It needed to stop if they ever wanted Marie to be able to protect herself and Anya feared the time where this would become necessary would be sooner than either of them anticipated.

The child had already shown that she was capable of functioning as a proper second. Anya didn’t like to admit it, even to herself, but the girl had been stronger when she returned from Nia. Anya wasn’t blind, she knew how Marie usually sought out Lexa for her gentleness. If she had to be the “bad mother”, she would if it kept her safe. The child needed to move on from her trauma, their brutal world wouldn’t care one bit what the child had been forced through.

She wouldn’t deny that their daughter could still enjoy spare moments of motherly tenderness. But Anya vowed to herself to use the weeks away from the capitol to up the girl’s training. The image the child portrayed had to become flawless if they ever wanted her to stand next to the commander unquestioned.

Anya’s mind briefly transported her back into the days of her own childhood. Her own mentor hadn’t been soft or gentle with her. Now that Anya looked back, she recognized that she actually had adopted a lot of the lessons she had intoned in Lexa, Tris, and now Marie, and Ontari, from her own mentor. The way she had treated her own seconds were heavily influenced by the way she had been brought up. Her brown eyes shortly flitted to Ontari. The nightblood girl had undoubtedly been brought up with more brutality than she had, and although the nightblood now tended to be a little too aggressive, Anya would still say her upbringing hadn’t destroyed her. Why should it now be any different with Marie? She wasn’t planning on beating the blonde child up as punishment, only to push her to being stronger. She was fairly certain the was what every mother would do.

Anya had picked out herself who would accompany them. A total of ten warriors were with them, all of them part of the unit now solely bound to the commander, not their individual clan. The message behind that was clear without the need for explanation. She also trusted those warriors to protect Marie and Ontari if they were to get separated from some unexpected reason. What had happened during the hunting trip with Marie alone, namely running into the shadow cats, and having to leave the child alone, which ultimately resulted in Marie losing her memory and being brought to Nia, would not repeat itself.

The general gave the signal for their departure and the small group left Polis slowly. Inhabitants of the city lined the streets, watching the procession with open interest. It was noted in fierce whispers that Marie and Ontari were part of the departing group.

Marie tried not to show any reaction to the rather loud whispers. More than once did she catch her own name in passing. Her posture only got more rigid, and she sat with her head held high on Sona, determined to be perceived as the perfect second finally. A small part of her mind prayed that this mission would go ever well, that she would manage to proof herself to Anya and be welcomed back into the capitol in a few weeks. Although Lexa and Anya had assured her before that she was stuck with them now, her doubts still whispered sharply within her mind that things like this could change.

Ontari steered her horse to ride directly next to Marie’s right side, shielding her physically from some of the observers standing at the side of the path. While the younger girl seemed to try and hide her reactions to the whispering, Ontari still saw little glimpses. The way Marie’s grip on the reigns shook before it was tightened so much her knuckles stood out white beneath her skin. The nightblood girl heard her own name uttered among the whispers as well, but while Marie looked ahead nonstop, as if no one was standing by the road at all, Ontari’s gaze turned sharply to those whispers.

Anya rode ahead, occasionally giving a crips nod to someone standing by the road who she recognized. Once they finally passed through the gates of the city and towards the woods fanning out around Polis the general led the way. She felt both girls’ eyes lying on herself heavily.

Still, she had noted how Marie hadn’t reacted to those whispers. Where the girl had been angry and explosive if she heard whispered criticism about her before, now, the child was calm, at least outwardly and that would have to do for now. She firmly believed Marie would learn and grow into the self-confidence she needed to stand in their world soon enough. Anya had learned under her own mentor how a bruise from training and snapped commands during training, could save her life in situations where it really counted. There was no real urgency in their travels. She had mapped out the route with enough points to pause that they would be able to make camp each night. Anya had already briefed the warriors from her own unit that she wished to have at least one training session once camp was erected.

Where Marie had before often travelled on a horse with Lexa or Anya, she now had to concentrate on the road ahead. She couldn’t let her gaze travel freely and breathe in the sights around them. Instead, she tried to obediently keep her eyes open to any unusual movement, any unnatural sound in the forest.

A little while later Anya slowed her horse down, steering it to walk beside Marie on her other side. She sharply questioned the child on the waypoints they had passed by.

Marie perked up immediately. Her back straightened against the uncomfortable pull of her overused muscles and her fingers tightened around the reins again. She quickly listed off the points she had noticed, praying internally that none had passed by her notice.

Anya only curtly inclined her head and the corners of her lips tugged upwards with the ghost of a smile. “Well done. Stay observant.”

Marie nodded in acceptance of the command. Internally, she preened at the slight sign of praise in her mentor’s voice. She hadn’t failed obviously.

“You’re sitting too rigidly” Anya’s next words made the little happy feeling die within Marie’s chest immediately and her shoulders slumped as she sighed under her breath. Anya remembered briefly how her own mentor had never let praise stand without a correction in addition.

Marie still listened to her reasoning attentively. Apparently, her rigidness would use the wrong muscles making it more painful for her to travel vast distances and Marie internally groaned. Already expecting that she would be in more pain on the coming morning.

She gave a mute slight smile to Ontari when she noticed the older girl’s eyes resting on her once Anya had quickened her own mount again to the front of the procession.

“What other names do you think would fit Sona?” Ontari asked lowly, trying to distract the younger girl. She wasn’t the most practiced at riding either and to her internal horror she had to realize that she was overusing some of the muscles Anya had just lectured the younger girl about as well.

Marie’s expression cracked for a moment, surprise flashed over her features openly and she seemed to consider her next words carefully. It was clear she was unsure on how to proceed. For a moment Ontari thought she had won and pulled an honest reaction from the blonde child, but instead, the girl’s expression closed off after another beat.

“Sona fits well” she answered calmly, expression carefully blank again, looking ahead now and not meeting Ontari’s gaze any longer.

Ontari sighed under her breath. She had gotten so used to the younger girl’s chattiness that riding next to this weird silent version of her was creeping her out. This felt different from Marie without her memories, it didn’t feel real somehow.

Even though Anya had just explained that she needed to relax her body more if she didn’t want to be in pain, Marie couldn’t bring herself to relax. The way Ontari was watching her, different from Anya’s evaluative eyes, was annoying. A part of her wanted to snap at the older girl to just let her be, that it was necessary to become the warrior Lexa and Anya needed her to be.

She still couldn’t hide the way her breath hitched when a tree in front of them suddenly flickered in front of her eye and Marie felt her heart hammering in her chest. From the corner of her eyes, she looked to Ontari briefly, the older girl obviously couldn’t spot anything amiss. So, her mind was playing tricks on her. That reassurance didn’t help to calm her internal anxiousness and Marie subconsciously tightened her hands around the reins until her own nails bit into her palms with a sting. Her heart stopped its wild crescendo immediately at the sting and Marie could breathe easier once more. She welcomed the sting internally, it was real, unlike the tricks her eyes had played.

Chapter 54: Chapter 298

Chapter Text

Lexa lowered herself onto the couch with a stiffness that betrayed the storm still running through her. Her posture was rigid, one arm draped along the armrest as though even in supposed rest she must remain commander, not mother. Yet Ontari saw the exhaustion carved into the faint slump of her shoulders.

The nightblood turned back to Marie quickly, unwilling to linger too long on the commander’s weakness. She adjusted her seat closer, reclaiming Marie’s limp hand between her own. The girl’s skin was still cool, though no longer icy, her pulse faint but steady under Ontari’s thumb. The fragile rhythm became her anchor.

Lexa tried to close her eyes, but her breathing betrayed her. Even across the room, Ontari could hear the uneven draw and release of air. It was the kind of breathing of someone pretending at sleep, failing to quiet the thoughts gnawing at their mind. For a moment, Ontari wondered what it must feel like for Lexa — to carry a whole coalition on her shoulders while fearing the loss of the single fragile person who had cracked her armor.

Her dark eyes flicked to the couch. The commander had shifted, lying on her side now, one hand draped over her own stomach. The muscles along her jaw worked as though even in half-rest she argued silently with herself. Ontari looked away quickly, back to Marie. It wasn’t her place to see Lexa falter.

Time stretched in silence. The fire in the hearth popped, and the wolf shifted its great weight closer against the girl’s chest. At some point the commander’s breathing evened out, turning softer, less jagged. She had fallen into a shallow sleep at last.

Ontari let out a slow breath she hadn’t realized she was holding. It felt strange — she had never before guarded anyone’s sleep, never thought it her duty. But as she sat there, watching over both commander and friend, she realized she wanted to.

It was Marie who stirred first. The girl’s lashes fluttered, her lips parting to draw in a faint rasp of air. Ontari leaned forward instantly, tightening her grip on the fragile hand in hers.

The girl’s eyes blinked open, grey and glassy, but this time they shifted. They moved — seeking. And when they landed on Lexa, still curled on the couch, her lips parted with the barest whisper.

“Anya?”

Ontari’s stomach twisted sharply. She glanced toward the couch at once. The commander was already rising, eyes wide and alert, pulled from shallow sleep as though the single word had been a command in itself.

Chapter 55: Chapter 299

Notes:

(See the end of the chapter for notes.)

Chapter Text

The days bled together until Marie could no longer tell them apart.

Every morning began with the same sound: Anya’s sharp voice cutting through the mist, rousing the warriors before the sun had fully cleared the horizon. Marie woke stiff and sore, the furs damp with dew, the chill of the grass seeping into her knees as she dressed. Her fingers trembled as she fastened her armor, but she kept her expression still. She could only faintly remember days now where her body hadn’t seemed to consist of a full ache all over. But weirdly enough, Marie learned to enjoy the pain. Or at least she started to believe Anya’s constant words that this pain was a sign of growth.

Around her, the camp would stir to life in a chorus of murmurs and groans. Warriors tugged on boots, stamped their feet against the cold, and cursed quietly when straps tangled. The moods in the early mornings were never chatty. So, Marie didn’t have to hide her own silence then, simply helping the dismantle of the camp instead. Ontari’s muttered complaints were always the loudest, though the older girl made a show of stretching her arms afterward, rolling her shoulders as if to prove she wasn’t actually suffering. Marie couldn’t understand what Ontari was aiming at. She always felt her dark eyes rest on her intently when she groaned and complained. The younger girl failed to remember a single occurrence where Ontari had even dared to whisper a complaint in Azgeda. Was she trying to signal to her that it was alright to voice her discomfort? The notion confused her and, Marie watched from the corner of her eye as she dragged herself onto her own horse without a word. She’d learned quickly that groans and grumbles were dangerous luxuries.

Then came the actual ride.

Hooves struck earth in a relentless rhythm. Leather reins creaked against her palms. The dull sway of the horse beneath her was no comfort—it was strain, constant and biting. At first her body screamed in protest with every hour. After a while, the ache settled into her bones, a familiar burn that never fully left, no matter how she sat. Where she had felt a personal connection to her mount before, she never really connected with Sona. The horse had obviously been trained well, it obeyed her easily.

Sometimes in the evenings the general’s horse huffed at her. Pulling at the robe which had been fastened around a tree, trying to get closer to her. Marie faintly remembered the times in TonDC and later in Polis where being at the stables and being allowed to pet the commander’s or general’s horses had been the highlight of her day. Now, she could only bring herself to give the hint of a smile at the horse’s effort and she didn’t allow herself more than letting the tips of her fingers glide over the brown horse’s neck in passing. She knew Anya was watching her constantly and didn’t want her to slack. The general expected her to fully contribute to the daily routine of the camp and Marie did her best not to disappoint her mentor.

She should have been awed by the world they passed. The forests stretched tall and green, rivers cut through the valleys like veins of silver, mountains loomed in the distance, their peaks kissed with snow. Once, she might have tugged at Anya’s sleeve to point out a bird wheeling overhead or laughed when her horse startled at a rabbit darting across the trail.

Now she kept her gaze forward, fixed on the back of Anya’s horse. She moved when commanded. She stilled when commanded. She did not let herself linger on the beauty of the world, because beauty would only make her soft. She also didn’t feel as if she had any energy left to spare on wonder.

So, the world outside of her began to blur around the edges. Thankfully, the flashes of the City of Light receded just as her outer world lost focus. The world inside her in heavy contrast was sharp and ugly.

~ ~ ~

At first, Marie didn’t even notice when a pattern in her behavior formed. She had only dug her nails into her palms when the silence pressed too loudly. It was nothing but a small, stinging bite to pull her mind away from her thighs burning in the saddle, from the knot twisting in her lower back. The tiny half-moons of pain were hers. She could control them. They wouldn’t leave lingering damage, so, she saw no real harm in them. They helped her stay focused.

Later, when Ontari’s training blade struck her in sparring and left a bruise, she pressed it afterward, hard, until her eyes watered. If that wasn’t enough, she would pinch at the bruise, deepening it subconsciously. She thought: if she could bear the sting long enough, maybe she wouldn’t fear the blows anymore. Maybe she’d finally grow stronger.

Pain now was the only thing simple. Pain was hers in her head. Pain was the only thing she felt she could still control.

To Marie’s dismay, Ontari noticed her changed behavior. For a while Marie thought the nightblood girl would abandon her, notice her lacking as well. But she stayed and Marie wasn’t certain if that wasn’t worse.

The nightblood’s dark eyes followed her with too much care, too much intensity. Whenever Marie thought herself hidden behind her new armor of blank expressions, she would glance sideways and catch Ontari frowning at her, looking at her as if she was looking at a puzzle. The older girl also continued asked questions she didn’t want to answer or even ponder.

“Did you finally think of other fitting names for Sona?”, was something the nightblood girl would try to coax from her during the beginning of their journey. After a while Marie found the question absurd, wondering internally why she had ever felt the need before to give a horse a name like “Muffin”. It indeed sounded ridiculous.

“Does your arm still hurt?” The wording of the question changed daily according to whatever location Ontari had gotten a hit in. Marie always shook her head at that one. It didn’t matter if it still hurt, she even wanted the pain to continue.

“You’re quiet. Why?” Marie didn’t have an answer for that one and she felt it to be the most dangerous question. On her weaker nights around the crackling firelight, Marie occasionally envisioned how she would finally burst and tell Ontari everything which was burdening her. If Marie thought she would be able to pull herself together again if she let go, she would take the older girl’s offer. She remembered how the dark-haired girl had offered her the same over and over in Azgeda. She had still allowed herself tears back then. Now, Marie wasn’t sure if she would find the strength to stop crying if she allowed the emotions to come back.

Sometimes Marie only offered a thin smile, sometimes a clipped reply instead, making it clear she didn’t wish to talk at all. More often as the days dragged on, she stayed silent completely until Ontari fell quiet too sitting next to her, the frustration plain in her tightened jaw.

But the older girl never stopped watching, never stopped offering. Although Marie couldn’t voice it, she relished in her stubborn closeness. Maybe after this journey was over, she could allow the older girl to look behind her mask.

One night, as they lay side by side in the tent, Marie was awake and stared at the canvas above them, Ontari shifted even closer, obviously awake as well. Slowly, cautiously, her shoulder brushed Marie’s. The motion hadn’t happened by chance, it was deliberate and in the dim darkness Marie felt her dark eyes rest on her once more. This was a wordless offering of warmth. Marie didn’t move away, she couldn’t even if she knew it would be wiser. But she also couldn’t lean in either. She couldn’t afford to although an increasingly large part of her screamed internally. If she gave herself even that much, she was afraid she’d crumble entirely.

~ ~ ~

Anya noticed the changes too, but her perception of them was completely different.

The general saw her daughter’s stillness, where the girl had fidgeted before in boredom or chatted about one thing or another enthusiastically, calm, and quiet had taken over. A small part of Anya missed the outspoken child, but she knew words and emotions could be dangerous in their world, twisted against you. The child would be safer this way, she told herself. She saw her flawless obedience. The child who had thrown down her sword in an outburst of anger and defiance when Anya had pushed her harder in Polis was gone. Anya knew the lesson would have been hard to Marie, but it needed to be done. She noted the way she swallowed complaints now and kept pace with the warriors. Months ago, the child would surely constantly have whined about the ache in her body, about the uncomfortable sleeping arrangements and probably also about missing Lexa and their quarters in Polis. Now, the child endured everything in perfect composure.

And Anya approved of the changed behavior. The child was finally learning what she so desperately needed. Life among the stars hadn’t prepared Marie for how different life on the ground was. Pain was not an enemy here, but it had to be a relentless teacher; it had been for Anya when she was Marie’s age, far younger even.

She remembered the first time her mentor had driven her through a week-long march with relentless strictness. Her thighs had blistered from the saddles, her palms torn bloody from clutching reins too tightly. When she had faltered under the strain, her mentor had only said: Good. Now you are learning where your limits are. Break them and so, she had.

Anya thought Marie needed the same. She told herself the blank face was discipline, not fear. She told herself the girl would grow into her strength, the way all of them had. Even Ontari carried the scars of the forced strength on her body, why shouldn’t this work with their daughter as well? When doubts started to flicker within her — when the look in Marie’s grey eyes once so lively and trusting, now resembled a cornered scared animal more than a strong soldier—she buried those doubts deep. Weakness wouldn’t keep Marie alive; she knew that, and they wouldn’t always be there to protect the child from this worlds’ harshness. Strength would keep the child alive. And so, she pushed her harder.

~ ~ ~

The warriors whispered around their campfires, voices carrying just enough for Marie to catch fragments.

“The Commander’s Second is quiet now.” Tyson observed one night.

“She’s learning.” Etta said another night with a hint of approval. “She’s hardening.”

So, Marie sat straighter around the fire. She was doing something right in their eye and she could only pray Anya saw the same thing.

They didn’t see the nights where she pressed her nails into her palms until tiny beads of blood welled against her pale skin. They didn’t see her pinch bruises until the ache grounded her again, steadying the spiral of panic inside her chest, threatening to swallow her whole. They didn’t notice when she hovered her hand above the flames of the campfire, so close that heat stung her skin, and she sighed in relief. She was testing her limits slowly. How near could she put her hands to the flames before the burn became unbearable?

They only saw the growing discipline. All of them had seen her falter on Polis’ training grounds. They didn’t see the hollowing; they didn’t know her well enough to note how her light dimmed continuously with every passing day.

~ ~ ~

Each day ended the same as well, namely with another hard training session.

After hours in the saddle on the road carrying them closer to Rockline territory, after duties at camp each evening, after exhaustion already weighed heavy in her limbs and everything, she wanted to do was curl herself together under her furs, Anya would pit her against Ontari with training blades. Marie obeyed the command, even when her arms trembled visibly, even when she knew she still didn’t stand a chance, probably would never do so. The sting of every strike Ontari landed became a seed she later cultivated in silence; another bruise she could pinch to find relieve.

Anya approved of her continued silence, her growing endurance, her apparent obedience. While Ontari worried continuously.

The older girl still tried to coax words from her by the fire. Sometimes she succeeded for a moment—Marie admitting softly, “I still need to get as good as you.” But when Ontari gently told her again that skill took years to cultivate, that it couldn’t be forced, Marie’s jaw trembled, her breath quickened, and then her fingers pressed hard against her own bruised arms until she calmed. Ontari had seen the tremor, seen the way pain steadied her, and it unsettled her deeply.

~ ~ ~

Weeks passed like this. The journey was taking them longer than Anya had calculated beforehand. Marie had lost track how long ago their departure from Polis had been. The road stretched long ahead of them, their company carrying them through forests, valleys, and fields. Marie’s body grew harder under the strain of the journey combined with training — her frame was leaner again, her posture straighter, her endurance greater than it ever had been before. But inside, she was unraveling slowly.

Nights were the worst for her.

When the camp quieted around her, when even Ontari’s breathing beside her steadied into sleep, Marie lay awake with thoughts gnawing at her. She replayed the moment she had failed to say goodbye to Lexa, the imagined warmth of arms she hadn’t leaned into, the soft words she had denied herself. She wondered if she was already a liability, if Anya or Lexa would one day decide she was more burden than daughter. She wondered if she would ever be allowed to feel this warmth again or if she even deserved to.

Sometimes her growing internal fear of failure under Anya’s expectations threatened to drown her. Then she would dig her nails into her skin until her hands now permanently carried little bloodied moons, or pinch her bruises, or hold her hand just above the fire until the sting consumed her.

Pain was safe and real. Pain drowned out her fear and she didn’t know what else would.

She began to crave the sensation, waiting with bated breaths until she wasn’t watched for a moment, and she could give in to her growing urge.

~ ~ ~

Ontari nearly caught her at it once.

The night was cold enough that the fire had burned low, and most of the warriors were already asleep. Ontari had woken from a dream with her ribs aching from where Anya’s training blade had struck her earlier that day. She pushed herself up, finding the furs next to herself empty. She slipped out of the tent quietly, careful not to wake the general, intent of finding Marie.

She finally spotted Marie, crouched near the last glowing embers of the fire. The girl’s shoulders were hunched forward, her pale face ghostly in the dim light. For a heartbeat Ontari thought she was merely warming her hands. But then she noticed the way Marie’s fingers hovered too close, her skin reddening in the heat, and how her small body trembled—not from cold, but from something more desperate.

“Marie?” Ontari’s voice was low, uncertain.

The child startled violently. Her hand jerked back, shoved hastily into the folds of her shirt as she scrambled to her feet. Her wide grey eyes found Ontari’s, and for a moment, the mask slipped. Shame, fear, something raw and bleeding flickered across her features before the blankness returned, sharper than before.

“I couldn’t sleep,” Marie said, her voice flat, trying to deny with all her might that Ontari had caught her at something that wasn’t supposed to be.

Ontari’s mouth opened, words pressing against her throat. Why were you doing that? What’s happening to you? Let me help. She said none of them. The warning in Anya’s eyes from earlier still burned in her memory. She couldn’t proof to Anya what she had just seen. The general would only brush the accusation off again if she tried to voice her concerns once more.

Instead, she only nodded. “Me neither,” she muttered, moving toward the water skin as if that had been her only intention all along.

When she glanced back, Marie was already slipping into the tent, pulling the flap closed behind her like a shield. Ontari stood alone in the dying firelight, her fists clenched, frustration and worry twisting inside her. She wanted to scream, but the night swallowed her silence whole.

~ ~ ~

Where Ontari saw fragility in the blonde child, Anya refused to see anything besides discipline. The girl was quiet, observant of her surroundings, and careful with her movements. She obeyed quickly, endured hardship without any hint of complaint. It was what she wanted from a Second—what Lexa’s daughter had to become if she were to survive the cutthroat world of the clans.

As the mountains grew closer, and their path bent toward Rockline territory, Anya began shifting her lessons. The girl had been drilled in the saddle and in sparring; now, she had to learn diplomacy and how she was expected to behave in front of elders of another clan.

On one cold morning, when the group broke their fast with dried venison, Anya pulled Marie aside. Ontari hovered nearby until a sharp look from the general sent her away.

“You will meet Rockline’s elders soon,” Anya said, her tone crisp as she straightened Marie’s shoulders with a firm hand. “They are proud, stubborn people. They respect strength, but not recklessness. Your posture speaks before your tongue does. Stand as if you belong at my side. Do not slouch. Do not fidget.”

Marie’s back stiffened immediately under her touch. “Yes, General.”

“Not General. ‘Mother.’” Anya’s eyes softened for the briefest moment, then sharpened again. “In public, you are our daughter before you are our pupil. The bond must be clear. Do you understand?”

“Yes, Mother,” Marie echoed, though the word caught in her throat. She couldn’t remember the last time she’d used the term.

Anya stepped back, circling her critically. “When they address you, keep your tone even. Answer what is asked. Nothing more. If you don’t know the answer, you defer to me or Ontari. Do not lower your eyes. Do not look like prey. You are the Commander’s daughter now. Hold yourself as such.”

Marie swallowed, her fingers twitching against her thigh with the slightest hint of fear. She wanted to ask what would happen if she failed. If she embarrassed them. If she proved once and for all that she wasn’t worthy to stand at their side. But she bit her tongue sharply. Pain was easier than questions and she would find out the answer when the time came.

Anya mistook the silence for hardening resolve. She nodded in approval. “Good. You will manage.”

But Ontari, who had crept close enough to watch from a distance, saw the way Marie’s nails dug into her palm again, small crescents blooming red against her skin.

~ ~ ~

That night Marie lay awake for a long time. Even though most days left her so physically exhausted that sleep came easily, this night, Anya’s words replayed in her mind cruelly.

In public, you are our daughter before you are our second.

The hollow ache in her chest deepened. That was indeed what had changed. She didn’t feel as Anya’s daughter anymore. The nights where the woman offered comfort by sleeping next to her long forgotten now. Before the woman had ordered her to publicly call her “mother” in front of the Rockline Clan elders, she had not used any form of name for their relationship any longer, neither within her mind, nor audibly.

If Anya was missing her as her daughter, she wasn’t showing it. The knowledge settled into Marie’s stomach like stones. She knew she was becoming the perfect warrior the general was pushing her to be. There didn’t seem to be a place left for the softer daughter any longer.

Tears burned in her eyes sharply. She hadn’t truly cried since the night before their departure from the capitol. It seemed an eternity ago now.

~ ~ ~

By the time the mountains came into distant sight, Polis felt like a distant dream. Marie couldn’t remember the warmth of Lexa’s voice, not clearly. Only the hollow ache it had left behind.

She didn’t let herself wish for it anymore. She only thought of the road, the ache in her muscles, and the sharp relief of the pain she called her own now.

It was enough. It had to be enough.

~ ~ ~

The days marched on relentlessly. Although Ontari still watched the apparent changes in Marie with deepening worry, she had stopped trying to lure the younger girl out of her shell. The child seemed completely out of reach to her.

Training, travel, duties, posture lessons. Marie’s body hardened under the harsh routine, her endurance growing, her frame wiry and taut. The warriors began to mutter less; some even nodded in quiet approval when she completed a task without falter.

Anya noted approvingly that the girl appeared as physically strong once more as she had when Ontari had brought her back to Polis after their time in Azgeda. The general tried to focus on that, not allowing the doubts to grow within her chest.

But inside Marie, hidden well behind performance, the spiral deepened.

Every bruise became a lifeline. Every sting of muscle ache a reassurance. Every night, when the doubts threatened to choke her, she returned to pain as her anchor. She hid it carefully pressing her arms only when no one looked, pinching bruises beneath her armor, testing heat when the camp grew quiet.

She told herself it was necessary. That this was her form of strength. That it was the only way to survive.

And so, when the mountains finally loomed large before them, and Anya began speaking of the Rockline elders in earnest, Marie kept her head high, her eyes steady, and her mask firmly in place.

The Commander’s daughter. The General’s Second.

No one had to know what it cost her to stand there.

Still, Marie worried what would happen at the Rockline Clan. Could she pull this performance off without faltering? Although she managed to force her body into obedience day after day now something chipped away at her. Marie tried not to focus on it, tried to tell herself that it didn’t matter, that she was becoming exactly what Anya needed and expected her to be. But inside Marie didn’t know how long she could maintain this act.

Notes:

I won't approve comments of artists who want to work together. Sorry, but I have no interest in that.
For anyone else feel welcome to leave a brief review :)

Chapter 56: Chapter 300

Chapter Text

Marie felt her heartbeat wildly in her chest as the last trees gave way to the sight onto the mountain line. She tried to hide the way her fingers threatened to shake with her growing nerves, and she only clutched the reigns harder in her grasp. Thankfully, most participants of their group seemed solely focused on the sight they were getting closer to. She knew with all her heart that the next few hours would decide her fate. If she failed at this meeting, she was certain Anya would never untrust her with anything important again, probably forever seeing the little girl she had claimed as her own who now failed to grow strong. She tasted the bitterness of bile in her throat. She had barely touched breakfast, still her stomach felt dangerously close to revolting. She knew she had done everything Anya had asked of her, taken every lesson in the last weeks without complaint. If she failed now, there was nothing else she could try beside accepting that she would never be the girl the general wanted.

“What an impressive view” she heard Ontari mutter from the horse next to her while the nightblood girl still rode close to her. Ontari hadn’t been in this clan’s lands yet, she had only heard stories of a few seldom warriors in Azgeda who had travelled far from the ice and into other lands. While the most imposing of Queen Nia’s fortresses seemed to have been carved into an immense iceberg, the Rockline Clan had apparently carved their home into the huge Mountains they had claimed as theirs.

The place couldn’t have been more different from Polis, even if it tried. It would almost be easy to just travel by the clan without even noticing. The mountains surface had mostly been left alone and winding small paths uphill, paths where they now had to dismount and lead their horses by the reigns, brought them higher. Beyond a mountain ridge, caves had been carved into the bare stone. From the outside they didn’t appear very appealing. But once Anya led them further on, passing by guards of the Rockline Clan with brisk nods, the mountains seemed to open vastly, as if they had been hollowed out completely.

Ontari had never seen such a thing before. With unhidden wonder she pointed out a colorful pilar to Marie. They passed by the base of the pillar, which was as large as a massive old tree and the twined stone reached upwards, it seemed to vanish in the dimness of the ceiling and Ontari noted with astonishment that she couldn’t even tell just how high these caves reached.

Marie hadn’t shown any outward reaction to Ontari’s pointing. Her grey eyes briefly flicking over the pillar the only indication showing that she had heard the nightblood girl at all. Ontari’s stomach knotted at the wrongness of the picture. She wasn’t the most expressive person, she knew that. But even she couldn’t fully contain her wonder at what they were just walking by, while the younger girl’s gaze remained mostly hefted on their mentor. Others might have taken Marie’s lack of expression and the way she carried her head high through these halls as perfect composure. But Ontari knew better, she felt as if she was walking next to a ghost, a mere flicker of the young girl she had started to feel so deeply for. She saw the faint tremor in her impossibly small hands, balled into fists now, eager to hide even the smallest hint of weakness.

Anya slowed her steps, coming to walk beside Marie one last time before they would enter the hall where the elder of the Rockline Clan were waiting for their arrival. Her brown eyes checked over her daughter’s figure one last time. The girl’s hair had been braided by herself this morning. The child had sat perfectly still while Anya had included the red bands indicating Marie’s status as the commander’s daughter and second. The child was wearing her best armor, adorned with a few details of leaves and stars stitched carefully around the edges, hinting at Marie’s origin from the stars and her newfound place among Trikru.

“Don’t lower your eyes when they look at you” Anya tried briefing the girl in sharp whispered orders. She hoped to remind the child one last time of the most vital details of the lessons she had repeated with her over and over during the last few days. Her hand fell heavily onto one of the girl’s shoulders, pushing her slightly to stand just a little bit taller. “Remember their titles and don’t falter.”

Marie’s breathing stuttered in her throat at the contact, and she briskly inclined her head, pulling her chin upwards to appear a tiny bit taller than she actually was. She felt Anya’s expectations pressing down on her like a tight band wrapped around her chest, threatening to steal her breath or break her apart if she didn’t perform her part.

For a moment Marie wished she had just a second alone again. Just a tiny moment where she could pinch the bruise on her stomach just one last time. Just one sharp sensation of pain to clear her mind one last time. But Anya didn’t leave her side anymore. Her brown eyes heavy as she seemed to watch every step, every breath Marie took now.

“You’ve trained hard for this moment. Remember our lessons” Anya spoke under her breath and the hand on the child’s shoulder tightened for a moment “Don’t disappoint us, now.” The warning couldn’t have been clearer in those words. The general was sure the child’s remaining nerves would harden into strength soon enough. The beginnings of her strength were finally there, she just needed to keep it up.

Ontari watched the scene with an unreadable expression. She had to clench her teeth together at the way Marie seemed to disappear even more behind the mask of the perfect warrior at the whispered reminders. Anya may not be using a whip on the younger girl, but her words seemed to land even heavier than any physical blow ever could.

The nightblood girl didn’t the chance to give the younger girl a fleeting smile, not even a faint nod, before they already stood in front of the heavy doors.

Marie wasn’t seeing a door; she was seeing the place where judgement would fall on her.

The heavy doors were pulled open for them, igniting a deep groan of stone against stone, revealing the vast hall of the Rockline elders behind it. The high walls were hung with torches, casting long shadows against magnificent carvings that ran along the full length of the chamber. Huge pillars of raw rock looked high above them, jagged but shaped by careful hands into patterns of twisting vines and creatures Marie had never even heard of before. For a flash she imagined one of those rock figures raining down on her, crushing her to dust.

The air was cool around them and seemed to echo the weight of the mountains themselves.

At the far end of the hall the elders waited for them. They stood in a perfect row, their armor less polished than that of Trikru’s warriors, but heavier, marked obviously by scars and deep cuts that told stories of battles Marie could not imagine, of battles she probably hadn’t even heard of. Their faces were stern, every line carved by hardship, and their eyes were as hard as the stone above them.

Although Marie felt the almost crushing weight of their gazes, she forced herself to move forward. Every step suddenly felt like a journey of itself. The effort of each induvial step so heavy that the band around her chest tightened almost unbearably. Her fingers prickled with the need to press her nails into her hands until crescent shaped red would bloom on her fair skin, but she knew the heavy gazes would notice. Anya had bound her hands in crisp bandages this morning. The general’s eyes had frowned at the numerous little wounds, wounds Marie refused to offer an explanation for beside “training”. So, she balled them into fists instead, feeling her nails bite at the bandages dangerously. Her breathing staggered for a second, there was no sting of relief to be found under the bandages, but she couldn’t allow herself to falter now.

Anya walked talked beside her, the very epitome of untouchable power. Ontari walked on her other side and Marie only briefly let her grey eyes flicker up to the older girl. The nightblood carried herself with an air of arrogance, chin high and her own gaze burning with intensity, like someone who wouldn’t let her strength be questioned. There was no hidden tremor in either of their hands and Marie felt undeniably small between them. She knew the entrance had been staged, deliberate in their formation. The commander’s most trusted general, her second and a possible successor to the commander walking side by side in clear support of their commander. It was a display of strength and Marie could only pray internally that no one would look through her act. She knew that this time she wouldn’t be able to hide behind Anya or Ontari, no, the heavy gazes were also for her.

Briefly Marie remembered how she had been introduced to Trikru in TonDC. The day felt distant and the memory faint. And still, she remembered how she had gotten the tattoo, how the warriors there had lined up to usher their formal welcome to her. She hadn’t known how to behave then, hadn’t even know how to properly grasp onto the arm of another warrior. She knew she wouldn’t receive such a reaction here.

“Anya kom Trikru” one of the elders spoke up in greeting. His voice was deep, and it echoed through the cavern loudly. “And the Commander’s Second.” His eyes rested on Marie with clear measurement, lingering on her small form as if weighing her worth. “We have heard much.”

Marie inclined her head sharply, mirroring the perfect nod, exactly in the way she had been drilled to by Anya. She forced her grey eyes to look up and meet with measuring gaze without a flinch. Internally Marie felt her heartbeat in her chest so loudly she was afraid those around her would be able to hear it, but she managed to keep her features carefully blank.

Thankfully the meeting went exactly like Anya had prophesized. So, Marie knew how to act perfectly. The general was questioned first, just as expected. Anya answered questions about their journey, their purpose here, and the Commander’s stance. Marie did her best to stand perfectly still, hands still balled into looser fists at her side now. She kept her shoulders squared and her back straight. She didn’t show any reaction to anything Anya answered only looking ahead stonily as if nothing could though her.

Her breathing stuttered for the faintest beat when the elders’ attention finally fully turned to her. She was asked in a clipped tone what she had learned of Trikru since leaving the sky, and when she answered her voice didn’t waver. Marie answered plainly and briskly, exactly as Anya had ordered her to. Don’t tell more than you are asked, don’t let any softness shine through.

Marie faintly remembered how Tris had questioned her in curiosity in the holding cell in TonDC and how all the novitiates had been allowed by Lexa to give voice to their burning curiosity about the sky later in Polis. She had enjoyed answering those question back then. Now, Marie was solely focused on hiding the storm inside her. She was questioned about her loyalty to Lexa as well and rehearsed the answer Anya had given her before perfectly.

Ontari’s breath caught at the younger girl’s words. There was no tremor, no hesitation, no flicker of doubt. But there was also no life behind the words. It was like watching a doll repeat its script. She knew that a true answer, one which wouldn’t be expected in these halls, would have been that Marie loved the commander fiercely. But she also knew this wouldn’t have been an answer Anya had droned into her daughter during their numerous diplomacy lessons.

It was during the offering of drinks that it happened. The misstep Marie had feared so deeply. A servant had set cups down before them. They were heavy stone vessels filled with something bitter and strong. Marie reached out for hers, trying to keep her fingers steady against the tremor threatening to break through. The edge slipped against her pal and the cup toppled sideways, spilling its content across the carved stone table.

For a brief second the world seemed to still in silence and Marie swallowed forcefully.

She heard the way Ontari’s breath caught beside her, noted how Anya’s whipped slightly in her direction, her brown eyes reproachful as their gaze met briefly. Marie felt the burn of shame crawl up her throat and for a moment everything threatened to collapse.

Ontari thought fervently on what to do, trying to think of a way to smooth over the small mistake. She was expecting Marie to break out into a deep flush, mutter an apology and stumble.

But then, the younger girl straightened, forced her internal storm even deeper. With a deliberate calm, she set the fallen cup upright again, leaving the spill untouched and folded her hands in her lap. Her face remained impassive as if nothing at all had happened.

The elders exchanged quick glances and a low murmur echoed between them. When one of them gave the faintest nod of approval, the atmosphere settled. In their eyes the girl had apparently not faltered but endured perfectly.

Anya’s lips twitched with the ghost of a smile. Pride flickered across her face briefly.

While Ontari stared at the younger girl in internal bewilderment. She didn’t see strength when she looked at Marie now, but rather absence of the child. She didn’t see perfect composure, but complete hollowness. Once more she was reminded painfully of the empty look Marie’s eyes had always carried in the halls of Azgeda. Ontari knew better know. The younger girl hadn’t simply shrugged off her mistake. No, she had buried it, the way she now seemed to burry everything deep inside her. The sight of it twisted something bitterly in Ontari’s chest. She wished for the power to reach into the younger girl and pull her back to the surface, but she couldn’t, she could only watch the proceedings with a growing sense of dread.

The meeting concluded only shortly after. Some formal words were spoken, a tightly rolled scroll handed to Anya, a message for the commander, together with a carved stone pendant. The pendant was a sign that there meeting had been successful and Ontari breathed slightly easier. When the elders finally dismissed them from their hall, warriors of the clan guided the group deeper into the heart of the mountain.

The air grew cooler around them and was heavy with the scent of damp stone. Ontari wasn’t sure if she would enjoy living here. Hallways carved in neat geometric lines stretched out before them, leading past chambers, and alcoves. Some were plain, lit only by torchlight, but others opened into astonishing displays of the clan’s craftsmanship.

Marie couldn’t bring herself to enjoy the sights they were passing by. Now that the moment she had been preparing for with such hardship had passed, all that she felt was emptiness. If she could, she would just lie down and forget about the world. She had assumed to feel some kind of accomplishment that the elders had not found her lacking, instead she felt absolutely nothing. As if she had stretched herself so thin during the weeks of travel and training that there was just nothing left of her now.

They passed by an enclosure where a group of wild horses stamped and snorted. Their coats glistened in the torchlight. The animals seemed to have been caught only recently. Their eyes were still wide with uncertainty, ears flicking back and forth as their handlers tried to calm them with murmurs. Their beauty was undeniable. Their muscles rippled, their manes were tangled, and they simply brimmed with life.

Ontari slowed in her steps and her lips parted into the faintest smile. “They’re magnificent” she murmured lowly. She turned her head in the hopes of catching Marie’s attention. She had half expected the younger girl to watch the animal with rapt fascination. But the younger girl only looked at them for a heartbeat, her grey eyes still so horribly blank, before she turned her gaze forward again without uttering a single word.

Anya watched her daughter’s sudden disinterest with a frown. In Polis the mutated horse from this very clan, the one Marie had insisted on being saved although its leg had been broken, waited for the child. The girl’s interest in horses had been obvious from the very first moment the child had encountered one, even being allowed by the commander to visit her warhorses in TonDC, long before there had been an actual connection between Lexa and Marie. She didn’t understand why the girl only walked on now, not even watching for a moment.

Further on they passed through tunnels which widened into a cavern where light from above filtered faintly through the cracks in the mountain. A handful of children played there, and their laughter echoed loudly as they darted between carved stone benches in an imaginary play. Their bright voices bounced off the walls, ringing sharp and bright against the silence of the place.

One of the warriors who had guided them gestured towards them with a short glance at Marie. “They are near her age. We can linger for a while, if….”

Anya interrupted him with a nod and gave Marie’s shoulders a slight push towards the group of children. “Go and play with them” she ordered, keeping her tone softer than it had been for weeks.

Marie’s brows furrowed for a moment before she inclined her head. Obediently she stepped closer to the children. They immediately paused and watched her approach with curiosity.

Anya watched the girl stepping closer with the hint of a smile. Remembering how Marie had convinced them to play tag with her, or the way the girl had joined Adria and her friends at the Boat People, or the girl previously joining hide and seek in an Azgeda village.

Her smile froze though when Marie simply stood next to the children, saying absolutely nothing. Her daughter only stared at them and stood among them like a ghost. The other children visibly exchanged uncertain glances until they slowly returned to their play. They didn’t include Marie, they simply flowed around her like a river flowed around a huge stone.

From where she watched her daughter now, Anya felt a faint pang in her chest. There was no laughter from her daughter now, not even the hint of an incline to join the game. Now there seemed to be nothing, no spark, no wonder, no child left really.

Anya called the girl back with a breathy tone and she felt the weight of Ontari’ accusatory observance lingering on her for a moment. Marie immediately turned and walked over back to them. Her expression still of eerily calm. Even the warrior who had proposed they stop here appeared slightly uncertain now.

Later that night when they finally had turned in for the night and Marie and Ontari lay sleeping beside her in the tent, Anya remained awake. Awake with the weight of what she had observed today. Yes, Marie had shown strength today. Strength the child had fought hard to gain during the last weeks.

The general looked over to the small form of Marie curled tightly beneath the furs and her throat tightened. Her hand hovered above her daughter’s shoulders uncertainly, aching with the need to offer the smallest bit of comfort. She lowered it almost hesitantly, before she finally brushed her fingers gently across the child’s shoulder.

Marie stirred faintly at the touch. Her body stiffened, clearly unsure of what she was supposed to do now, as if the faint touch had become something alien in the last weeks.

Anya’s chest ached, remembering all the nights where the child had practically jumped beneath her furs at even the slightest hint of the offer of softness. She had wanted to forge strength into their daughter. She had told herself that every lesson had been necessary, that every moment of silence was a step toward survival. But as she now stared at the stiff fragile body beside her Anya wondered, perhaps for the first time in years if she had mistaken obedience for strength.

As the fire burned low, she worried. She didn’t think about the Rockline elders, or politics and the coalition, but about the cost of her own choices for their daughter.

Chapter 57: Chapter 301

Chapter Text

The journey back started unspectacularly. The road blurred together like the ones they had taken to come here for Marie. While the rest of the group seemed to be in a lighter mood, Marie felt the air heavier around her, weighted down with the memory of the mountains and the Rockline Clan’s elders’ hard gazes. She hadn’t failed completely, she knew that. But she couldn’t shake the feeling of failure from her.

Anya’s brown eyes were still on her whenever she was in her vicinity. Marie felt that her gaze had changed, but she couldn’t identify what the general was looking for from her now. The bruises from training had faded mostly and Anya had proclaimed that they would have few days of reprieve from training as a token of success for their mission.

Marie didn’t feel this lack of training as a reward. The scratches on her hands from where her nails had dug into her own skin weren’t giving her the same sting anymore when she pressed on them now. She had tried to dig deeper, press on them harder, waiting with bated breath for the familiar relief to come. But there was nothing to be found now. Only the echo of a dull ache which faded out of reach long before her muddled mind could have cleared.

She felt her hands starting to shake more. She had to hide her growing weakness harder from detection by Anya or Ontari. She had begun to reach for something sharper to find the same thrill.

When the camp broke in the evenings, now that there was no training for a few days, she sometimes could slip away, muttering that she needed space to breathe. She felt both Anya and Ontari watching her. She heard once how the nightblood girl wanted to follow her, probably hoping to offer some company, only for the general to call her back and order to let her go.

So, hidden from view from the others in the shadows the forest around them offered, Marie began to reach out for the very dagger Lexa had once gifted her.

Marie could vividly remember that day. Lexa had challenged her in front of the curious onlookers to aim for one of the highest cones in the trees. It was a wonder really that her throw had been a hit and not a miss. There had been clear pride on Anya’s and Lexa’s features that day. She remembered how eager Tris had been to help her in looking for the dagger. Marie also remembered how she had used that dagger to throw it at the pauna a while later, buying them precious moments of time to get away.

At first Marie only traced the flat edge of the blade against her skin. The delicate inside of her wrist, the curve of her thigh through the gap in her armor. The coolness and the potential danger of the movements grounded her, a sharp contrast to the burning feeling in her chest.

She wondered if there ever would be another day where Lexa and Anya would look at her with such open pride. Internally Marie highly doubted that.

Just a few days later the edge of the thrill had muted again, and Marie progressed, eager to chase after that feeling. The feeling she had grown addicted to, the only thing which still felt remotely real. She switched the hold on the dagger in her hand in the shadows, twisting the blade so the wickedly sharp edge rested against her skin. She pressed it down. Just slightly. It was enough that the movement left a stinging thin line on her fair skin. It wasn’t deep and the lines would usually have faded by morning.

On another night Anya motioned her to sit down at the fire with her, a little away from the rest of the group.

“You’ve done really well in the meeting, little star” Anya said the words of praise cautiously.

Marie’s heart thundered in her chest, and she felt like a deer which had just spotted the hunter who wanted to shoot it down. She didn’t know what to say and fervently she thought of anything. She settled on blurting the first thing which rang through her mind. “Can we resume training tomorrow?” 

In her mind the simple praise she may have once beamed at now felt like even more pressure. She may not have completely disappointed her mentor during the meeting with the Rockline Clan elders, although Marie still held onto her small misstep there which hadn’t made her performance perfect there, but didn’t that small success just up the general’s expectations the next time?

The general blinked at her in open confusion, but slightly inclined her head in agreement. Internally Anya felt torn. She had expected at least the hint of a smile on Marie’s features at the open praise. Of course, if the child now truly wanted training, she would be the last one to deny her that. She saw continued interest in combat training as something to nurture. The girl still had a lot to learn in that regard if she ever wanted to reach her full potential. And still, the response had been unexpected and somehow it left an unfamiliar ache in her chest. 

Anya wasn’t one to hand out praise often or freely. Every bit of praise had to be earned with continued effort and strength. Tris had beamed each time she had offered even the hint of praise to her. As Lexa had grown older under her tutelage the brunette’s green eyes had shone and she stood just a little bit taller as if to proof she was worth of the praise she had just received. 

Something within her wanted to reach out and hold onto the girl’s thin shoulders for a moment. Intoning into her that she indeed deserved this praise now. But Anya kept her hands at her side when she noted how the girl balled her little hands to fists at her side, obviously deeply uncomfortable in the situation. 

Marie excused herself just a moment later, saying she needed to relieve herself. She stumbled away from the camp on unsteady feet, her hands shook at her side, and she didn’t know why the storm just raged louder within her. Shouldn’t she feel happy that Anya had praised her?

This time when Marie reached for the dagger the skin bled where she had pressed it against her own leg. The pain was sharp, and it instantly stilled her conflicted thoughts. She didn’t need to think anymore, just feel the pain and everything would be alright.

Over the next few days Marie’s anxiousness grew. Ontari was watching her more sharply and she feared the older girl was suspecting that something was off about her. Anya continued to try and speak to her in a softer tone, which only put Marie’s guard up higher. 

Marie internally also worried about their impending return to Polis. They hadn’t met any messenger from the capitol yet, so, there was no way of knowing how the atmosphere among the clans had settled. She still remembered how worried and exhausted Lexa had sounded. If things were still bad, the commander needed her to stand strong at her side. She couldn’t regress to weakness there or she could even be the one who put Lexa’s life at risk. 

Marie slipped away from the camp as often as she dared. Every fresh cut on her skin now whispered that she was the one having control. She was the one making choices for herself. She tried hiding the cuts under her clothes and armor. If it was more than a faint line against her fair skin, Marie would wrap a bandage around it for a day or two at most. They had returned to having combat training each evening, so, when Anya questioned her about the continued appearance of bandages Marie just shrugged and said she’d gotten a slight injury in training that evening. 

The warriors of Anya’s unit watched her growing discipline with nods of approval. Tyson sometimes still offered her a smile when he handed food to her for the night and Marie forced her lips to ghost into the resemblance of a smile as well. The others seemed to accept her as one of them now, the orders to her were no different than to anyone else in the group. 

Ontari sensed that something was horribly off about the younger girl. She was there physically. She was getting stronger, her instincts sharper and her movements in combat training quicker. Her progress there was undeniable. But beside combat training Ontari sometimes wondered if Marie was even still there. The child seemed to be lapsed in silence almost at all times now. Only with a lot of prodding Ontari succeeded in getting the girl to tell her anything at all now. And even then, the younger girl barely met her eyes, her answers were one-worded deflections at best. 

Ontari had just tried to get Marie to tell her how she liked the deer another warrior had managed to hunt, and they had just received roasted strips of. She thought that to be a harmless subject, something she usually would think the younger girl would immediately answer. Now though her grey eyes looked at her with a furrow to her brow. It seemed to Ontari as if the younger girl was searching for something within her features. Maybe if the question had been some kind of trick? 

She had her own stomach knot uncomfortably. This version of Marie reminded Ontari painfully of how she had been under Nia’s upbringing. Everything had felt like a test or a challenge. Every little piece of kindness something to be twisted and used against you later. Why did it appear that Marie had adopted the same way of looking at things now?

Had she been a model for that behavior? Ontari direly hoped that wasn’t the case. She was honestly missing the easier friendship with the younger girl. Internally, the nightblood girl hoped that the commander would be able to achieve what she personally couldn’t right now, namely break through the girl’s sudden walls and pull her real self out again. 

Her dark eyes followed the younger girl retreat into the tree line. She had watched the child disappear almost every evening with rising worry. Marie had never before displayed behavior of wanting to be alone like that. She let her eyes travel over the rest of the group. Anya seemed occupied with two other warriors; a little dispute seemed to have broken out about who deserved which particular piece of the deer. Seeing the general’s state of distraction Ontari quickly rose from her place around the fire, following the path Marie had taken between the trees.

Ontari didn’t know how far Marie went when she left. So, she treaded forward carefully. Even at night the forest around her seemed alive. She heard the chirping of a few insects as they went about their way. The rustle of leaves as a bird broke from a tree up into the dark horizon. 

When she heard the snap of a twig, most likely from someone stepping on it, Ontari turned towards the sound abruptly. One of her hands hovered at her hip, ready to draw a weapon in case the sound hadn’t been produced by Marie but rather a larger animal she was approaching. 

Carefully, Ontari rounded a larger tree where she was rather certain the sound had stemmed from. Her dark eyes immediately fell on Marie. The girl’s movements were hurried and for a second Ontari thought to flash the glint of steel as a weapon was put away. She frowned in reaction. Had she scared the child by her sudden appearance? 

Marie’s grey eyes flashed angrily at her and Ontari’s brows furrowed. Beside the time where Marie had been in Azgeda without her memories, the child had never looked at her with such open anger. “What?” Marie snapped at her and the edge to the girl’s voice only deepened Ontari’s frown.

“I just wanted to check you’re alright” Ontari said in a carefully calm tone.

Marie’s anger disappeared as soon as it had come up and in the blink of an eye the younger girl’s façade was up perfectly. Her features were blank and her back straightened carefully. “Of course,” Marie retorted, and her voice sounded as if it was only an echo from somewhere, lacking conviction.

Ontari blinked behind the younger girl who had started her way back towards camp without another word. She spotted the way the child’s hands trembled beneath her sleeves and her eyes narrowed when she thought to spot a suspicious red spot on one of her sleeves. Was that blood?

Her thoughts turned quickly, wondering on what exactly she had even walked on. Ontari wasn’t sure what it was and the uncertainty of it made it worse. She sensed something was wrong, but she couldn’t proof it. 

Marie’s teeth ached by the time she reached the campfire again. This was the first time Ontari had followed her into the woods. No one had done that yet and Marie had taken for granted that she would have the reprieve of a private moment. Her first reaction to Ontari’s appearance hadn’t been fear at the older girl nearly discovering what she was doing. It was anger and with a blazing intensity which scared even herself. Marie knew that she needed those moments if she wanted to retain her strength. She would slip and fail if she had to do without them. There would be nothing calming her mind then. But Marie had never felt rage like that against someone she cared for. And although Marie had distanced herself from Ontari as well, she knew the older girl was her friend. 

The panic had set in later, already hidden behind her mask. What would the older girl do if she found out? Would she tell Anya? Marie shook her head to herself slightly. It didn’t matter now. Ontari hadn’t caught her, yet. She knew she needed to be more careful now as the nightblood girl had already been suspicious and she could guess that their encounter just fed those suspicions. 

Marie sat back down next to the fire and stared at the dancing flames while she tried to keep her mind still.

When Ontari returned just a few moments later the older girl didn’t immediately walk to her. No, she stopped next to the general and Marie’s breathing hitched in rising fright. She thought Ontari hadn’t seen enough to go and tell on her.

She saw Anya incline her head to whatever Ontari had said. When the general didn’t immediately look over to her Marie forced her breathing back under control. Maybe Ontari had spoken about something else entirely with their mentor. 

Still, when the older girl joined her side again, Marie couldn’t keep her gaze on the flames. She looked over at Ontari suspiciously, trying to judge her mood. When she started pressing her nails sharply into her palms again, Marie swallowed and turned slightly to face the nightblood girl. “What…” she faltered for a second, swallowed again and forced the burning question out. “What have you said?”

Ontari’s expression was hard to read as she simply looked at her in silence for long tense moments. “I just offered to take the first watch.”

Marie’s frame relaxed slightly, and she blew out a deep breath through her mouth. A perfectly harmless explanation. She turned her grey eyes back towards the fire when she was satisfied that Ontari had spoken the truth.

Still, the weight of the older girl’s gaze was starting to become suffocating, and she feared that Ontari would one day uncover the truth with those sharp eyes. Marie felt a little of her former fury rear its ugly head again and she balled her hands into fists in her lap, telling herself that she had no reason to be angry at her friend now.

Ontari continued offering silent company to Marie until she was called over to have the first watch of the night. In truth, she had taken the watch to be able to intercept Marie in case the younger girl would slip from the tent again, like she had seen her do previously when she had caught her so unnaturally close to the burning embers of the campfire.

The way the girl had reacted and especially that she had been curious enough to ask after what she had said to Anya just confirmed Ontari’s internal foreboding. She wished she had been with the younger girl a moment sooner between the trees. She knew for certain now that Marie was hiding something, and she needed to find out what.

“Let me help with your hair” Anya offered calmly once she had entered their shared tent behind Marie. Ontari would be on watch for a while, so, they finally were alone once more. Anya hoped she could use a few moments to try and speak to her daughter.

What she had seen the last few days confused her. Where the blonde child had once looked to her to tell her eagerly about something interesting, she had spotted around them, the girl now only seemed to look towards her for orders. She sprang into action almost before Anya even had the chance to finish voicing the words.

The child immediately had let her hands drop from her hair, where she had started unraveling the braids and removing the red band. She sat perfectly upright and still, while she waited in silence for Anya to move closer.

Anya sighed under her breath, feeling the distance between them widen even though she moved closer to the child physically. With gentle fingers, careful not to pull on any knots, she removed the braids from her daughter soft hair. Her hands froze in their motion when the braids had been taken out and she continued to let her fingers glide through the strands just for the sake of it. She knew Marie used to enjoy that feeling immensely. Now, the child tensed the very moments the braids had been removed, almost as if a switch had been flicked. The task was done, comfort didn’t seem to be wanted from the child right now.

With her throat tight Anya let her hands drop down, feeling the sting of the child’s rejection ever so sharply. Marie didn’t lean into touches anymore, didn’t even seem to wish for physical touch at all. And Anya couldn’t understand how this change came to be.

“You can lie down” she brought out a little rougher than intended.

Marie’s grey eyes flicked up to her for a second and something flashed in them. Had it been apprehension? Anya couldn’t say, before the girl took off her armor.

She reached out towards the girl when she spotted another bandage beneath her trousers. “Where did this come from?” she questioned with a frown; voice laced with sharpness.

Marie straightened visibly and her gaze was empty when she looked back up. “Training” she muttered in this new clipped way, signaling that she wouldn’t offer any further information.

Anya’s throat tightened even further. She had tried to watch over the girls training even more in detail today. Slowly the numerous bandages were starting to feel wrong. She wanted to believe the child. Because if they didn’t come from training, just where could they from? Anya’s mind refused to go into any other explanation. Training, yes, it had to be training injuries.

Marie slipped under the furs quickly, trying to hide from Anya’s brown gaze lingering on her. Her breathing was slightly quicker than it should be. She was feeling the itch again. Her thoughts were in turmoil and there just beneath her armor the handle of the dagger rested temptingly.

But she knew Ontari was on watch outside of the tent and there was no way Anya would leave right now. So, Marie sought the latest bandage on her leg under the furs, digging her nails where she knew the cut rested. It wasn’t terribly deep, but it stung when she pressed on it. She could have cried from frustration. The sting wasn’t enough. Her mind refused to fall quiet.

When she heard Anya shuffle, getting ready for the night as well, Marie forced her body to relax, counting her breathing carefully. She knew they were slowly getting closer back to Polis and internally Marie feared what would happen there. Lexa seemed to have been able to sense lies and she worried the commander would see right through her act.

She drifted off into sleep with the thought that she would need to hide even better now, that she would need to portray an even stronger sense of strength if she wished to fool the commander. As long as everyone around her would believe the mask she had constructed during the last weeks, no one would ever see the failure beneath. Because if she couldn’t fool the commander then there may not be a place for her at all.

Chapter 58: Chapter 302

Notes:

(See the end of the chapter for notes.)

Chapter Text

Once Polis finally loomed on the horizon the atmosphere in the group shifted.

Ontari was apprehensive of returning to the capitol. Their journey had been successful, the Rockline Clan calmed, but when she looked at the younger girl riding so rigidly next to her Ontari thought the prize for this success had been too high.

The warriors which had travelled with them seemed relieved to finally be back in the city. During the last few nights around the campfire jokes had gone around, while plans were made. Meeting in a tavern, sleeping in a comfortable bed again, eating food someone else had cooked. Simple luxuries which weren’t found in the hardship of the long roads.

Anya rode ahead of them again, head held high, nodding to a few important figures at the side of the streets.

Marie was a ball of nerves, although her composure showed nothing of that outwardly. She had convinced herself that it would surely get easier once she had faced Lexa. She had pulled her internal walls even higher during the last nights. More bandages were hidden under her clothes. Although Ontari had tried hard to keep taps of her movements, Marie still managed to slip away sometime during the evenings. 

Her composure faltered once they steered their horses through the market square. Marie had kept her gaze ahead, focusing on the looming tower. A man stepped closer to her horse suddenly, a small boy by his side and an even smaller girl on his arm.

“Another gift for the commander’s daughter” the man offered with an honest smile, while the boy, Callum, Marie remembered beamed up at her openly. “Di’d it m’self” he offered proudly, and Marie needed a moment to loosen her iron grip around the reigns of Sona. It was a pendant shaped like a star.

Marie swallowed forcefully, accepting the pendant with shaky fingers. The times where she had visited this small family and produced gifts for Lexa and Anya for their adoption felt years ago now. “Thank you” she forced her voice to come out at least slightly steady.

The way Callum’s face fell clearly showed it had come over as a harsh dismissal. Marie closed her hand around the pendant, feeling the pointy ends of the star press against a cut in her palm. She wanted to call out and apologize to the small boy. But his father had turned from the road, saying something to his son intently. Marie felt as if him turning away had been a physical blow to her stomach and she blinked harshly against the sting of tears in her eyes. She couldn’t name why watching the little boy’s excitement die down hurt far worse than anything before had.

She couldn’t cry now, not when she would face Lexa in a few moments.

“You remember him?” Ontari chipped in the question from the side. Her expression showed the mixture of discontent and worry the older girl felt.

Marie briskly inclined her head and ground her teeth together. She hadn’t forgotten, although it felt like it had been a different life entirely. Without another word she steered her horse forward when she felt Anya’s disparaging gaze at the interruption resting on her.

She was glad once they left the market square behind them. After weeks on the road the marketplace which once had only held wonder at the endless offering of wares Marie had never seen before, was now too crowded, too loud, too heavy with clashing scents.

Marie felt her control fray at the edges. Just like Polis’ streets were full of people, all of them watching only her, she knew the tower would be filled to the brim as well. Ambassadors with their endless expectations, handmaiden going about their work and still seeing everything which was even remotely out of order and of course, countless guards, primed to notice even the tiniest suspicious movements.

In the forest during the journey Marie had always found a chance to slip away. But where would she find that chance here? When her grip tightened around the star-shaped pendant she already knew she couldn’t do without these moments of clarity. She wouldn’t be able to appear strong without them. She knew everything would come crashing down if her mask fell. Anya wouldn’t think of her as strong any longer. Everyone would see that she had just been pretending, that she had been nothing but purely weak.

Long before the base of the tower came into clear view, Marie felt as if something heavy and mighty was pressing down her. She thought to already feel the weight of Lexa’s probing gaze and internally, Marie trembled. Weeks ago, even the tiniest separation from Lexa had felt too long, now, Marie wasn’t sure why the only thing she felt was dread.

~ ~ ~

A messenger interrupted the meeting Lexa was currently holding. The clans were still unsettled by Skykru’s ability to wield tech none of the other clans even understood. She had spent the last weeks painstakingly trying to convince the clans that Skykru’s tech could be a way of progress for all of them.

The message was brief. The traveling party she had waited for had just passed by the gates of the city.

Lexa called a pause to the meeting immediately. She wanted to be there when Marie dismounted from her horse, hoping to reunite with her daughter as soon as possible. Lexa had missed the young girl terribly. The wolf at her feet perked up its ears, almost as if the clever animal had understood the message as well.

Risha had taken to accompany her to meetings, usually lying or sitting directly in front of the throne. Occasionally, the wolf would growl loudly, probably picking up on Lexa’s internal frustration when an ambassador said something entirely stupid, circling an argument back needlessly.

“Your human is back” she told the wolf with a smile, letting her fingers glide through the animal’s soft fur as she stood from her throne. The ambassadors had already filed out of the throne room. Risha’s light blue eyes looked at her for a moment, before the wolf leapt towards the door, clearly eager to leave.

A little while later Lexa stood at the base of the tower. Titus had insisted on accompanying her, of course, Gustus and Loras had come as well, shadowing her in addition to Risha.

She heard the sounds of numerous hooves against the cobbled road before she saw them pass the last bend obscuring them from her view.

Lexa’s eyes immediately fixed on Marie. The child was unmistakable. Her blonde hair, together with the red bands woven into it, were very familiar to the commander. What wasn’t familiar to her was the expression the child wore. From afar their daughter looked like the perfect young soldier, head held high, expression unreadable, steering her horse through the crowd without faltering.

The relief Lexa had briefly felt sharply at spotting the child physically unharmed, died almost instantly. The blonde girl riding towards her looked like her daughter, but it didn’t feel like her, even from afar.

The expression Anya wore gave away nothing either. But Lexa already knew that their political mission had been a success. The general would have already sent word if it hadn’t been.

While Ontari carried herself in the same way, Lexa still immediately spotted how her dark eyes kept on fleetingly checking the younger girl next to her.

Marie had bought herself as much time as she dared, keeping her gaze fixed on the tower ahead, without actually seeing. Now that they were at the base of the tower her grey eyes finally found the commander standing there, dressed in her full regalia of command. Marie felt the walls she had built internally pressed tighter as each breath suddenly felt like its own battle. She told herself firmly that she couldn’t allow herself to falter now. Not in front of the commander. And surely not with half of Polis watching.

Marie saw a blur of fur move towards her quickly from the corner of her eyes, just as she started to dismount. Risha bounded towards her, tail wagging in obvious joy. Her throat suddenly felt dry and tight when she felt the cobbled stone beneath her boots.

Risha jumped up at her legs briefly and Marie’s eyes immediately flicked around. She was happy internally to see the wolf well. But this open display wasn’t good. People were looking already. Marie pushed the wolf down with intent, igniting a clear whine from Risha while the light blue eyes seemed to pierce right through her. The wagging of the tail stopped, and the wolf sat on its hindlegs obediently, head slightly tilted as if scrutinizing her. When the animal turned without another glance and returned to Lexa’s side Marie felt her stomach clench. If Risha could look through her like this, how long would it be before Lexa did the same?

Lexa felt Risha press slightly against her legs, looking up at her with those icy blue eyes. She guessed if the wolf could talk, it would ask if this stranger was Marie at all.

Marie waited next to Sona until Anya and Ontari had dismounted as well. A tiny part of her remembered running towards Lexa and throwing her arms around the woman weeks ago, not minding the eyes watching them at all. Now every step closer to the commander felt like danger increasing.

Anya gave her a light push in Lexa’s direction. The commander had remained rooted on the spot, expression unreadable, while her green eyes swam in a storm of emotions, far too many for Marie to focus on without getting dizzy.

“Commander” Marie forced the word out briskly, tone even and bowed, behind her back she held the star-shaped pendant in a vice-like grip. She bowed in the same way Anya had instructed her to bow in the hall of the Rockline Clan. She knew now that this had been the way she had been supposed to behave around Lexa all around. When she felt the moisture beneath the bandage on her hand, Marie looked up again.

Her knees felt weak where she stood and Marie locked them tight, terrified that the commander would notice the slight tremor running through her body. She forced her shoulders back and her spine straight. She was strong. She had to be, there was no alternative.

Lexa had imagined their reunion a hundred different way during as the weeks had dragged on slowly. Not once had she pictured her daughter looking through her as though she was nothing but another political figure to bow down to. She had half expected to feel Marie throw her arms around her neck enthusiastically, like the child had already done countless times. Or at least the girl brimming to the rim with stories of the adventures she had lived through on the road, eager to share every tiny detail she hadn’t seen. The perfectly polite and reverent bow Marie displayed left her breathless with a hollow ache, feeling as if she hadn’t failed as the commander but as a mother to this child.

Lexa’s green eyes swept to Anya with endless questions burning in their intensity. What had happened during the weeks she hadn’t seen their daughter? If the girl looking back at her wasn’t so clearly Marie, Lexa wouldn’t have recognized her.

“Marie” she said cautiously, as if dealing with a hallucination. She reached out and placed a hand on the girl’s thin shoulder once she stood upright again. The way the child’s frame tensed, hiding a tiny flinch, under even this brief touch sent a chill down Lexa’s spine. Her internal unrest was mirrored in the wolf’s ear pinning back as well, while something resembling a mixture of a whine and a growl emitted from its throat.

The commander saw Titus’ gaze linger on the girl as well. But where he had gazed at her openly childish antics before, now, he seemed impressed and was clearly pleased by the apparent change. Where Titus now obviously saw discipline and strength, Lexa saw a child being bend by the weight of responsibility and the loss settled like stones in her stomach.

Marie dug her nails deeper into her palm still clutching the pendant, its edges cutting sharply. She couldn’t let go, if she did, she feared her mask would slip as well. She wasn’t blind to the unmasked sadness in Lexa’s eyes and Marie felt something within her tremble even more, desperately wanting to reach out, but she couldn’t let the commander see her hidden weakness.

Lexa wished for nothing more than to pull Marie forward, force her own arms around the rigid small frame and hold onto her until at least some softness returned. But something within her told her that doing this publicly wasn’t wise. She couldn’t risk showing herself as a mother right now, not when the coalition was just waiting for a hint of weakness from her.

So, instead Lexa stood straighter and turned to the crowd of onlookers as the commander, even if it tore her apart internally.

“Today we finally welcome the commander’s daughter, as well as general Anya and Ontari back in our midst. The unrest with the Rockline Clan has been settled, none of you need to fear an immediate war. There will be peace.”

And while the mission may have secured them peace in the coalition for now, Lexa felt as if it had opened a private battlefield. If it would be between her and Anya, or rather between her and their daughter, Lexa couldn’t tell yet.

The crowd broke out in cheers, pleased at the news. The whispers about commander’s daughter turned reverent as well.

Marie’s chest ached and she felt as if she could barely breathe anymore. Although she hadn’t allowed herself to reach out for the commander, a small, tiny part of her, a part she had pushed down on relentlessly in the last few weeks, had continued to hope that Lexa would reach out and pull her in. The fact that the commander hadn’t done so, only strengthened her believe that she couldn’t let her mask fall. The commander needed her strong, there was no place for weakness, not even between them.

~ ~ ~

“You will help Ontari with her things before you come up” Anya ordered into the tense silence in the elevator. The small room felt full to the brim with unspoken words. The general saw the way her former second’s jaw was clenched tightly. She needed to speak with Lexa alone, before the commander would speak with Marie.

Marie’s grey eyes only shortly flitted over towards her, before she inclined her head in mute acceptance, standing taller again.

Ontari’s eyes narrowed slightly. In any other situation she would have argued with the general that she didn’t need the younger girl’s help with her luggage. But she saw it for what it was, a few moments of privacy between commander and general. So, she kept her tongue.

Lexa felt her heart ache when the elevator stopped on the floor where Ontari’s quarters were. While Ontari briefly looked back at her, Marie simply walked out with mechanical precision. She wondered what the child was clutching so tightly behind her back before the door slid close behind them.

Marie’s composure sagged a little once she was alone with Ontari. The guards stationed around the hall didn’t seem to pay them any mind. She walked ahead the older girl silently. She had been to Ontari’s quarters often enough to know the way. Usually, she had come there to spend time with her friend, talking or simply being in each other’s company. She tried hard not to think about why Anya had ordered her to stay with Ontari. The general also hadn’t been very specific. Just how long was she supposed to stay here before she went to the commander’s quarters?

Ontari sighed under her breath at the resigned expression on the younger girl’s features. She hadn’t truly thought that the girl would switch completely and be openly affectionate with the commander. But to see her so disconnected from the woman was disheartening. Ontari had been privy to so many scenes of pure tenderness between the commander and Marie that she knew without the sliver of any doubt just how much the Trikru woman loved the younger girl. Ontari had tried not to feel hurt by Marie’s continued rejection of every bit of friendship she had offered during their journey, and she continued to cling to the hope that the commander would be able to break through the child’s unnatural walls.

The single bag of things she had packed for the journey lay on the small table between them. Marie kept her gaze focused on a point on the wall, obviously intent on just staring at it silently until she would leave.

Ontari’s lips thinned. She hadn’t been truly alone with the younger girl for weeks now. So, she never had the chance to truly speak her mind. But she did have that chance now.

“I really don’t know what’s gotten into you, Marie” she said bluntly, taxing the child for every small involuntary reaction. Her jaw twitched, her hands tightened to fists again and her breathing hitched audibly. But the child remained stubbornly silent. “You know that Lexa loves you deeply. You don’t need to orchestrate strength that isn’t truly there yet.”

For a second Marie looked as if she had just dumped her head in icy water. This was the most open and fragile she had seen the younger girl in weeks. Her hands shook and her mouth opened and closed without emitting any sound.

“I want to help…” Ontari tried to offer honestly, keeping her expression open and her voice kind.

She didn’t know what she had said wrong, but the child’s expression blanked over in a flash. Her eyes briefly flicked to Marie’s hand. The girl’s knuckles were white around the shape of something small and apparently sharp. Ontari opened her mouth to ask, but Marie’s grey eyes suddenly blazed with rage. “I don’t need your help” she seethed through the clenched teeth. “Keep out of my damn business!”

The younger girl stormed out before Ontari could do more than call her name behind her loudly. The guards around the halls watched the proceedings with a frown and Ontari felt her dread coil tightly in her stomach. She guessed Marie would go up to the commander’s quarters and she really hoped Lexa would be able to bear the storm. 

~ ~ ~

Marie’s head swum as she hurried through the hall. She heard Ontari calling after her, noticed the guards turning their heads and internally something screamed failure. She had let her mask slip. She hadn’t even lasted an hour in Polis. Had Ontari seen right through her act the whole time? Who else had seen it already?

In the elevator Marie noticed how strongly her hands shook. She had pressed the star-shaped pendant so strongly that blood dripped from her fingers. She pressed the button to signal her intent to go to the top floor. Anya had ordered her to follow them after all and she would obey her order.

The ride upwards didn’t take long enough for Marie’s tumultuous thoughts to calm. When she stepped out of the elevator she hesitated. The hall was completely deserted. Not a single guard was stationed on the floor, although the commander’s floor usually was guarded most heavily. Marie frowned as the only explanation she could come up with was that Anya and Lexa had wanted to speak in private, without even any guards catching what was being said.

Her throat felt dry, and her hands shook more strongly again as she etched closer to the door to the commander’s quarters. She could guess already that the two Trikru women would be talking around her.

When she finally stood in front of the door, Marie heard them even against the sudden rushing in her own ears. They weren’t talking, they were fighting, loudly and they were fighting about her.

“… you’ve pushed her too far, Anya!” Lexa’s voice was low and laced with fury.

“She asked for more training. She wanted it” Anya’s answer came quick and steadfast. “She needed it.”

“She’s still a child, our child! Not one of your soldiers to be broken!”

Marie felt her fingers getting wet with even more blood as she pressed the pendant into her palm more sharply. They were fighting about her, because of her, again. She was still reeling from her confrontation with Ontari and hearing them fight because of her now only deepened the wounds.

Notes:

For anyone reading, please let me know what you think :)

Also, a forewarning for the upcoming chapters: It gets very dark. So, for those readers who don't want to read about a suicide attempt, I'd rather advise to skip at least chapter 303 when I post it.

Chapter 59: Chapter 303

Notes:

Once more: heavy trigger warning: this chapter contains a suicide attempt.
The chapters afterwards will deal with the fall out.

Chapter Text

The fight continued while Marie stood in front of the door, shaking like a leave in a storm, barely hanging on before it was blown away.

“Don’t you dare!” Anya’s tone had gone cold. “I did what needed to be done and forged her to be strong. You should have seen her during the meeting. She did perfectly.”

“Strong?!” Lexa thundered back “You call this strength?! I couldn’t care less about any meetings right now, Anya. She flinched under my touch. You’ve brought me back a hollow robot. You broke something within her. I want my daughter back!”

Marie’s breathing hitched as her heart thundered in her chest, while the two women clashed behind the closed door. The world seemed to spin around her.

For a moment where Marie’s grip loosened on the star-shaped pendant she thought about what would happen if she just pushed open that door and walked inside. Would Lexa accept her as weak as she truly was?

Her heart clenched painfully at the realization that she was almost certain Lexa wouldn’t reject her. The woman would fold her arms around her and shelter her from the storm.

“She needs to stand strong beside you now more than ever!” Anya obviously refused to see the commander’s point.

Marie felt her grip tighten around the pendant once more.

Drip. Drip.

A few drops of her blood landed on the floor by her feet and suddenly Marie heard something rustle behind the door.

“You can go out later Risha” the commander’s voice was barely controlled with fury, calling the wolf from the door.

Marie held her bleeding hand to her chest and the rushing within her ears grew louder as her mind replayed what Lexa’s last words.

The commander already knew that she was broken.

Marie felt that knowledge settle into her stomach like heavy stones and the pressure around her chest increased until it was hard to breathe. While Lexa may accept her like she truly was, the commander couldn’t and they were undeniably one, the commander and Lexa.

Almost following an internal pull Marie turned from the familiar door again. The fight had continued behind it, but the rushing within her ears drowned out the words as if her head was stuck under a strong current.

She stumbled back through the corridor, coming to a stop in front of another familiar door. She couldn’t face Lexa and Anya now. Her mask felt torn to shreds.

She pushed the door open with shaking fingers, leaving a bloody handprint on its surface. Some of the furniture they had used before was still there. Some of her things as well and Marie sat down at the table when her knees finally gave out.

She looked around the room she had once shared with Anya and later Ontari as well forlornly. She wished she could return to that time now.

The book she had been given by Abby was still on the table. The very same book she had started to write her story in. Her hand pulsed angrily where she was still clutching the star pendant strongly and her other hand shook a little less as she slowly scanned over the few pages she had written down.

Blood was on the last page already. Her own blood, where the feather had snapped and pierced her palm.

I want my daughter back!

The words kept on repeating themselves within her mind and Marie felt tears blur her vision. She stopped fighting them, feeling as if she had no strength left.

The general had drilled her into being the perfect second. She had learned to fight and how to obey without second thought. But on the way she had unlearned everything Lexa wanted from her as her daughter. Lexa thought of her as a hollow robot now, broken beyond repair.

Marie’s thoughts kept on circling back to that. While Anya wanted the perfect little soldier, a show of strength and discipline, Lexa wanted her soft and lively. She couldn’t be both. Being both at the same time was impossible now. She had disappointed them both.

She thought about how Lexa would look at her now if she stood up and walked into the commander’s quarters. The woman would see all of her weakness and probably know that there never would be strength again.

Marie felt her tears run down her cheeks hotly. She picked up the writing utensils lying next to the book. Lexa had supplied them again, telling her before that she could come here and be on her own and write down her thoughts whenever she wished.

There wasn’t much to write now. Lexa was right, there was barely anything left.

I am sorry I am not enough. I love you.

Marie didn’t write more, and the few words were hard to decipher as shaky as she had written them. Both sentences were true. She did feel remorse that she couldn’t be stronger. She still remembered how she had loved them before.

She thought back on where her last entry had ended. Right before her time with the Ice Queen. Marie placed the writing utensils down and her free hand wandered to the sheath carrying the dagger Lexa had given to her.

Maybe she could clear her mind and pull forth her strength once more. Marie rolled up her sleeve. When she held up her hand, the blood from her palm already slowly sought a path down her arm. She pressed the sharp edge of the dagger against her inner arm, hoping for the sharp pain to finally put a stop to her spiral, as it had done so often now during the last weeks.

She could have screamed with frustration when it didn’t work.

She pressed the blade deeper, thinking that the sensation just hadn’t been strong enough. But no, it didn’t work either. Instead, her gaze focused on the way her blood formed patterns on her fair skin.

The sight transfixed her for a moment before her thoughts started to get even louder. They swelled until Marie pressed her fists against her head, hoping to drown her thoughts. She only managed to smear some blood on the sides of her face that way.

Her conflicting thoughts, wanting to proof Anya wrong, wanting to be the daughter Lexa craved, fell silent altogether when one thought finally came through with crystal clarity.

There was no way to win. No matter what, she couldn’t be what they needed her to be. There was no place for her here any longer.

Marie’s tears stopped, as well as her shaking. Her heart suddenly beat calm again. She had thought like this before during her time with Queen Nia. She had wanted to take a weapon from training there, turning it against herself, escaping the pain. Now she wouldn’t escape pain, but rather she would make sure her family wouldn’t suffer because she couldn’t be what they needed.

Marie felt eerily calm as she set the pendant on the table right next to the still open book. She didn’t feel the pain when she pressed the blade into her skin again, far deeper than she ever had before. Blood welled immediately; it flowed in little crimson rivers.

She switched the dagger to her other hand and repeated the motion. When she started to feel lightheaded, Marie slid from the stool to the floor, backing up with shuffling movements until her back rested against a cold stone wall.

When her limbs started to feel heavy and cold, she didn’t fight it when darkness started to cloud her revision.

~ ~ ~

No matter what Ontari tried, she couldn’t settle.

A servant had brought dinner for her just a moment ago, but the sight of food left her queasy now.

The little confrontation with Marie left her raw internally and she wondered if she had lost her only friend already. Ontari shook her head.

No, she needed to speak to the commander. If Anya refused to see, what she had been watching all along, maybe the commander would be open to her concern.

Ontari hoped the woman would even hear her now. She could assume Lexa would try to get closer to Marie again now, probably under Anya’s reproachful observation.

When Ontari stepped into the elevator, the first thing she noticed were a few drops of blood on the floor. Her brows furrowed as she bent down and felt it. It wasn’t much and it wasn’t dried fully yet.

She signaled that she wanted to be taken upwards and waited with her stomach still coiling in dread to be carried upwards. Irrationally Ontari suddenly feared this to be Marie’s blood.

Once she stepped out of the elevator Ontari’s stomach clenched. There were more drops of blood on the floor here, leading a path from the elevator.

It was red blood; it definitely wasn’t the commander’s.

Ontari’s steps quickened until she stood in front of the door where she had spent a few weeks with Marie and the general. Her stomach dropped when her eyes fell on the bloody small handprint, too small for an adult.

With shaking fingers Ontari pushed the door open and screamed.

Suddenly everything seemed to play out as if the seconds stretched unnaturally.

Behind her Ontari heard the doors to the commander’s quarters pushed open with such force, that they bounced against the walls. 

At the same time Ontari burst into the room towards Marie’s crumbled form.

No! The denial echoed through her mind so loudly, she didn’t hear anything else for a moment. She crashed down next to Marie’s slumped over body. There was so much blood everywhere Ontari almost feared reaching out and feeling that Marie’s skin may be cold with death.

Still, she immediately spotted that most of the blood must come from the girl’s thin arms. She pressed on the places with her own hands, feeling the skin slick beneath her fervent grip, hoping to contain the life which was pouring out of the younger girl.

By the time two sets of heavy footfalls reached the door, Ontari was already kneeling next to Marie, her grip firm on the child’s bleeding arms and Ontari had never seen either woman so shell shocked.

Lexa took in the scene in front of her as she felt time itself stopping.

Her eyes flitted through the room shortly. The opened book on the table, a little star-shaped pendant lying next to it, coated in blood. A few words scrawled on the open page. The drops of blood on the table. Her own dagger lying on the other side of the book. The blade gleaming with slowly drying blood. The trails of blood little hands had left on the floor, clearly, while the child had backed up against the wall.

Although it felt like an eternity in itself, barely a beat had passed before Lexa bounded through the door as well, coming to her knees on Marie’s other side. The child was alarmingly pale, and blood still seeped through Ontari’s fingers where she was trying to staunch the bleeding.

“Marie” she reached out towards the child’s shoulders, giving them a shake, hoping to rouse the girl and see her open those grey eyes again. But the child’s head lolled uselessly to the side. She had clearly lost consciousness. Fear like no other settled like ice in her veins, praying internally to whatever god there may be that the child wasn’t gone yet.

Ontari’s own eyes widened at the way the girl’s head just lolled to the side and she pressed her hands down against Marie’s small arms even stronger. “Please, Marie, don’t do this” she whispered the plea into the room.

Lexa turned her gaze sharply to Anya. The general stood utterly frozen in the middle of the room; one hand stretched out towards the items on the table. Her brown eyes widened with shock and her lips moved with muttered words too low to hear.

“Call for a healer!” the commander addressed the general sharply. There seemed to be so much blood already and she didn’t know if their healers would be able to do anything. “Anya!” she called the older woman’s name when the general simply remained frozen, as if she hadn’t heard her voice at all.

“No… not like this” Anya’s muttering became audible. “I only wanted her strong.”

“Move, Anya! Or she’ll bleed out right in front of us!” Lexa tried to command the general into movement sharply but failed.

Risha who had followed them from the commander’s quarters let out a loud howl suddenly, throwing its enormous head back. The sound at least seemed to have pierced through the haze of Anya’s paralysis, on her sudden turn the woman stumbled against the table, and the general’s footsteps echoed loud and hurried through the hall towards the elevator once she finally moved.

Lexa felt the seconds stretch mercilessly. Her hands shook where she still held onto the child’s shoulders. “Marie, please, stay with me” she whispered the plea with a cracking voice. Once she let go of the child’s shoulders, she tried to put more pressure over the place where Ontari’s hand already were. Her fingers slipped over the skin slicked with the child’s blood, and Lexa shuddered.

She had felt and seen her fair share of blood already. Her own, blood of those she had killed in battle, blood during torture or even during executions. She had seen the child bleed before, but she had never felt so powerless.

Lexa wished more than ever for the ability to turn back time. If she could, she would have never agreed for Anya to take the girls with her on the journey. Or at least, she would have forced the rigid child into her arms earlier today. She could only hope now that she would get another chance of holding the girl alive.

Her throat felt tight with the knowledge that this couldn’t have been accident. The words scribbled on the page, the bloodied pendant and worst her own gift of the dagger turned into the very weapon the child had used against herself. Marie had done this deliberately. She had recognized on first glance how the child was suffering at the base of the tower and yet, she had allowed her to walk away.

Ontari felt the commander’s hands trying to close over her own uselessly, slipping on the younger girl’s blood. Although Ontari felt her muscles burn with the effort of keeping her hold and her hands threatened to slip on the blood as well, she willed them to stay in place by sheer force. If she moved even a fraction and loosened her grip it would mean letting Marie’s life drain out between her fingers.

Lexa tried to remember the correct way to wrap a bandage on a pressure point that bleeding stopped. She could faintly remember having such a lesson as a novice years ago. But her mind stubbornly refused to pull forth the knowledge, focused entirely on her all-encompassing panic threatening to consume her mind. All she could was try and help Ontari where the nightblood girl still pressed her hands against the wounds.

The commander felt her hands shaking against the younger girl’s hands. She couldn’t exert the strength Marie needed right now. Internally, Lexa still prayed just for one additional chance. One further chance was all she needed, and she would never fail the blonde child again.

Lexa couldn’t tell how much time had passed until footsteps rushed from the elevator towards them. It could have been seconds, minutes or even hours. Her mind had lost its focus, everything in her was focused on her daughter now. The only thing which mattered right at this moment.

She saw Laurel appear next to her together with Nyko. “Lexa” the older woman addressed her almost softly.

She didn’t use her title, only her name and Lexa wondered briefly just how she looked like right now. Hands slick with red blood, green eyes undoubtedly widened in panic, body shaking with helplessness.

She knew what the healer wanted. They needed space to try and save the little girl. Still, separating from her, letting go and moving even for a single inch felt almost impossible.

“Keep that grip on the other arm” Nyko spoke the command sharply to Ontari when the nightblood wanted to move away for the healers.

Ontari let go of one of Marie’s arms immediately, now pressing both her hands against the other arm. The healers turned Marie’s lax body slightly, so, they had free view on the girl’s left arm. Where she had stopped pressing against the wounds blood flowed more freely once more and Ontari absentmindedly wondered just how much blood the girl could even still loose.

From the corner of her eyes Lexa saw Anya hovering behind them, keeping her distance and once more paralyzed in her place.

The healers didn’t ask what had happened. Either Anya had told them, or they already recognized the scene in the room without any need for clarification.

Lexa watched Laurel pull a sling around the girl’s upper arm, twisting it a few times around a small rod, efficiently cutting off the blood supply to the arm for a few moments. The long wound was cleaned quickly, and Lexa’s breath shuddered in her chest at seeing just how deep the young girl had wounded herself. She watched with trembling hands how the long wound was stitched shut carefully by Nyko. She distinctly thought that the things he used looked to come from Skykru, and she knew the healer from TonDC had been to Arkadia a few times to learn healing techniques from Abby.

The same procedure was repeated on the child’s other arm. Once that was done both her arms were bound in thick bandages.

“Should we move her to the healing…?” Laurel started to voice the question.

Lexa immediately cut in and shook her head. “No, she stays with me” she proclaimed sharply. She refused to let the child out of her sight even for a second.

“What happens now?” Ontari’s voice sounded hesitant, and her expression was heavy as she looked at the unconscious younger girl. The child hadn’t woken or so much as stirred at all while the healers had treated her.

“We wait” Nyko answered calmly. If he pressed his fingers against the child’s throat, he could still feel her pulse, weakly, but it was still there. He couldn’t tell though if the girl was out of danger or if she had already lost too much blood.

The way to the commander’s quarters was short and Nyko carried the child’s body gently, while Lexa’s hand hovered beside him uselessly.

Once Marie had been placed carefully on the commander’s bed the healer hesitated. “We need to check if there is more” he said almost reluctantly.

Lexa nodded with a grim expression. She sat down on the edge of the mattress, so, she could reach out her hands and gently feel the child’s forehand. The girl’s skin was clammy and cold, and Lexa shuddered. Had they been too late?

Ontari only moved to the bathroom after Laurel told her there was water to clean off her hands. Her fingers had started shaking as well now that she wasn’t responsible anymore to keep Marie’s life inside her with physical force. Her hands were caked in the younger girl’s blood.

Anya hovered beside the bed just like she had done in the other room. Her tension was palpable. The way she looked at the fragile body as clothes were pulled away and even more bandages were revealed told Lexa already that the general must have known at least parts of what was happening. She may have refused to acknowledge it.

Nyko’s hands shook visibly as they untied bandages from the fragile body. The child appeared even smaller now stripped of her armor, arms bound tightly in thick bandages, lying fully exposed on the enormous bed.

Lexa’s breath staggered at the notice of the sheer number of wounds hidden beneath their daughter’s clothes. The child’s body spoke of an escalation happening over the span of weeks unnoticed, or worse yet possibly even tolerated, by the general’s usually sharp gaze. Thin faint lines had given way to deeper cuts, telling the story of the child’s internal suffering painfully.

Suddenly Anya’s hovering presence seemed intolerable to Lexa. If the general had watched their daughter even remotely as vigilant as her gaze was now, this shouldn’t have been allowed to happen.

“Get out!” Lexa’s voice was shaking as she turned to her former mentor. She had entrusted their child’s protection to the general. But what the girl’s body showed couldn’t have been protection. Anya had failed her; she couldn’t endure her presence right now. If she had to, she would protect the small girl even from her general now.

“Lexa…” Anya started uncharacteristically weak. Her voice was tinted with regret, every pore of her body seemed to ooze with guilt. But it wasn’t enough to the commander, she couldn’t hear her rationalized reasoning, not now. Not while the girl laid on the bed, so thin and frail, looking more like a ghost than a living thing.

“I said: GET OUT!” Lexa repeated the order with fierce fury and her eyes blazed angrily at the older woman. “I will have you escorted out, if you don’t leave now!”

Chapter 60: Chapter 304

Notes:

Thank you very much for everyone who is engaging and reading my story =)

Chapter Text

Nyko’s hands hovered about the child’s wounds at the display of the commander’s raw rage.

At the commander’s last words Anya flinched visibly as if they had been a physical blow. Her lips parted as if was planning to bring forth an excuse or explanation, but no words came. The hollow weight of guilt seemed to press on her shoulders and while Anya usually stood tall and pride, there seemed nothing left of the general within her right now.

Ontari had ceased her scrubbing at her hands as the commander’s voice rang loudly through the vast room. The skin of her hands was clean, but still red from where she had scrubbed too hard, as she stepped out of the bathroom.

She took in the scene mutely and her dark eyes burned as she looked at the woman who had been appointed as her mentor. Ontari had seen the general as something unbreakable, yet, here she watched the general crumble. And for once, she wholeheartedly had to agree with the commander. She had tried to warn Anya, tell her that this change in Marie couldn’t be anything good, only to be ignored and told off for questioning the general’s authority.

When her eyes finally landed on the bed and Marie’s exposed body, she inhaled sharply. The younger girl had hidden many more wounds than Ontari had thought possible. Internally, she felt the guilt of not having tried harder to follow the younger girl each night when the child slipped away from the camp starting to eat at her.

Anya didn’t know what to say. Even in her worst imaginations of what the child had been hiding from her, she hadn’t assumed it could be this. Every step she reluctantly took towards the door, felt like a step closer to exile. She could see it in the way Lexa’s green eyes blazed at her. She had lost the commander’s trust. She briefly noted on the angry body language Ontari showed as well. She hadn’t just lost the commander’s trust; she had apparently also lost the respect of her own second. The little moments of the last few weeks where she had tried to offer their daughter tiny tokens of kindness flashed in front of her mind briefly. She hadn’t meant to break their daughter, only to make her strong, enable her to survive in their world, the same way she had once been forced to learn. But now as she cast her last glance on the seemingly tiny body on the commander’s bed, Anya knew she couldn’t have gone about it in any worse way.

When the door finally fell closed behind Anya Lexa returned her full attention to Marie. Laurel was occupied cleaning the girl’s hand. Lexa felt her stomach revolt slightly as the pattern of the wounds on Marie’s palm fitted to the little star-shaped pendant which had been lying on the table.

The child’s skin had taken on a worrying waxen tone. There didn’t seem to be more which could be done at this moment, as Nyko finished cleaning the last wound which needed tending to and pulled a fur up the girl’s body, trying to keep her as warm as possible.

Nyko’s blue eyes were worried as he felt for the girl’s pulse once more. It felt to him as if it had only gotten weaker, he was barely able to feel it anymore. He looked at the commander briefly, the leader still looked deeply shook. The woman hadn’t even left the bed yet to clean off the blood from her own fingers.

“I can’t say if she’ll wake” he said bluntly, storing away the bandages which were left untouched for now. He could already assume they’d need numerous more if the girl pulled through.

Lexa swallowed visibly, but inclined her head, saying that she understood.

“She’s too weak for transportation now and I don’t have the things here I saw Abby use” Nyko continued.

Lexa attention was immediately fully on the healer. “Skykru has things that may help?” she questioned with hope rising so sharply, that she couldn’t quench it.

“She’s lost too much blood” Nyko retorted “A blood transfusion could help. But it would need to be done quickly. Her pulse is growing weaker.”

Lexa nodded. “I’ll see what I can do” she said as a dismissal for the healers for now, already standing from the bed and springing into action. If there was anything which may just increase the chances for her daughter’s survival, she’d make it happen somehow.

Nyko and Laurel left with the instruction to call them if anything about Marie’s condition was to change. Apparently, the child’s body temperature should be monitored closely for the next few hours. Hopefully catching if it dropped too low or if a fever started.

“Stay with her for me for a moment” Lexa asked the nightblood girl who still stood in the middle of the room, gaze on Marie’s unconscious form.

The girl immediately nodded and stepped closer to the bed, reaching out to take one of Marie’s smaller hands between her own.

Lexa felt her dark eyes follow her movements through the room as she finally reached out the radio Clarke had left with her in the aftermath of the City of Light. The little contraption had started to gather dust where it had remained untouched. The commander stepped out of the balcony for a moment. The sun was starting to set on the horizon, just as if it were any other perfectly normal evening, not caring for the tragedy which had just occurred.

The wind against her face was a welcome external sensation contrasting the panic which still set in her very being.

With one hand she reached out and held onto the railing of the balcony, while the other held the radio in front of her face, pushing the button she had observed Clarke use so many times.

“Hello?” she spoke into the crackling static of the device. A shiver ran down her spine as the sound reminded her of all the warped things the AI had created in Polis. She had never planned to touch the radio and actually use it. But Marie’s life being on the line was all the reason she needed to use it now.

“Commander” the static was disturbed by the clipped reply.

“Raven” Lexa recognized the voice immediately. “I need to speak to Clarke or Abby.”

“What is this about?” Raven retorted in her typical way; voice tinted slightly with annoyance.

“Marie” was the only thing Lexa offered and she hated how her voice shook even to her own ears. She felt her daughter’s blood drying on her hands, cracking with the movement of pushing the button to speak. She remembered vividly how Clarke had reminded her before departing from Polis, that she could contact them for anything. She had huffed at the blonde healer back then.

“Kid can’t catch a break again?” Raven’s response sounded like half a joke and only a beat passed before she added “I’ll fetch them.”

There was only the crackling static again and Lexa waited with bated breath. She wanted to return to Marie’s bedside. Not seeing with her own eyes that the child was still with her was a small torture now. But she didn’t want Ontari to listen.

While she waited, Lexa clenched her jaw in growing frustration. She commanded armies on battlefields, had forged the coalition and now, she was powerless to help the child she saw as her daughter.

“Commander, this is Abby” came another voice what felt like an eternity later. “You demanded to speak to us?”

“Nyko needs things for a blood transfusion and blood matching Marie’s” she offered, ignoring the hint of a jab in Abby’s tone.

There was silence for a moment and Lexa’s breath hitched. She didn’t understand how this radio worked and not being able to see who she was speaking to on the other end was confusing. Usually, she could always rely on her skill in reading the expressions of those she spoke to, which often gave more away than their actual words.

“A blood transfusion?” Clarke had apparently taken over. “What happened? Has there been an attack? Are you injured?” The questions bubbled faster than Lexa could press on the button to answer.

“Marie…” she faltered into silence for a beat and the full depths of what had happened started to sink in as her whole frame seemed to start shaking. Her voice wasn’t more than a whisper when she forced the next words out. “She tried to …” another pause, where she had to press the words out, “…take her own life. Nyko said this transfusion may help her.”

“If she lost this much blood to need a transfusion, we can’t wait. We can pull her blood type from the database.” Abby chipped in with clear urgency in her tone.

“How did this even happen?” Clarke continued with her questions, voice ringing higher. “How much blood did she loose?”

Lexa swallowed forcefully, feeling the rest of the child’s blood still cling to her hands. “Enough that she is pale and cold. Her pulse is weak. She didn’t wake.”

“Then she really needs a transfusion as soon as possible” Clarke concluded.

“Commander, we’ll prepare what is needed. But you do realize that you will need to bring Skykru tech into your tower? Nyko knows how it needs to be done.” Abby’s voice hinted at hesitation.

Lexa’s resolve hardened. Since the tensions between Skykru and the other clans had risen, there hadn’t been any travel to Polis of Skykru people. “I don’t care what it means. Marie is more important.” She knew she would need to deal with the political fallout eventually, but she’d master that storm when it came, saving her daughter’s life had to take priority now. 

“Things will be there as soon as possible” Raven concluded and her voice had remarkedly lost its usual joking edge.

Lexa left the balcony just a moment later again, wanting to see for herself that the little girl hadn’t already slipped away.

“Skykru will come here?” Ontari asked with the hint of a frown.

Lexa’s lips thinned slightly. Ontari had heard enough of what Nyko had said to understand what the stakes were. “Their tech will” she answered with a sense of unease. She knew potentially she could spin the events in such a way that the commander now indeed had power over Skykru’s tech and was choosing to use it for the good of the coalition. Abby had already proposed before, that healers of the other clans could travel to Arkadia to learn. If Nyko was now able to use this blood transfusion after having been instructed by Abby, the worth of this course of action was clear.

Almost hesitantly she placed a finger on the girl’s throat, trying to feel for her pulse herself. She felt her own nerves stronger than the faint rhythm of the child’s blood. Her fingers still caked in Marie’s red blood contrasted sharply with her light skin.

Lexa quickly went into the bathroom, finally wanting to clean the girl’s blood off of her fingers as well. When she returned just a short moment later, Risha had jumped up on the bed and was now lying across the girl’s legs. If only the animal had the ability to guard the child from death itself.

“You should rest as well now” Lexa told the nightblood girl firmly. The weeks of the road would probably have taken a toll on Ontari as well, no matter if she would outwardly ever agree to it.

Ontari’s head whipped up towards her instantly and her expression clearly showed just how much she did not want to leave right now.

“There is nothing you can do here right now” Lexa tried to reason with the girl. She could of course order her out, but something was keeping the command on her tongue. Ontari was the one who had found her after all and had physically tried to safe her. The way the nightblood girl had looked at the general spoke of something between them which Lexa hadn’t been told yet.

“Can’t I just sit here?” Ontari asked cautiously. She was still holding one of Marie’s small hands between her own. The guilt was starting to built within her, wishing that she had stood up more strongly against Anya, maybe she could have protected Marie from this outcome altogether. Would the younger girl still have reached for the dagger if they hadn’t fought, before she stormed out?

Lexa sighed slightly under her breath. The prospect of being completely alone right now wasn’t a very appealing one to be honest and she somehow doubted Ontari would indeed rest if she sent her away now.

So, she inclined her head, walked around the bed and sat down on Marie’s other side, grasping onto her other hand. The child’s fingers felt small and cold in her grasp, as if life was already vanishing from them.

“It’ll be a long wait” Lexa muttered, almost to herself. “What brought you up here in the first place?” she questioned into the silence, only interrupted by Risha’s loud breathing. Had the wolf smelled the child’s presence in front of the door when it had scratched at the door?

Ontari’s expression fell and her dark eyes remained on Marie for a long while, suspiciously shining as she was close to tears herself. “We argued” Ontari finally settled on and she exhaled loudly, while her grip on the smaller hand tightened. “I…” she hesitated for another beat, “… had actually wanted to speak with you. That’s why I came up.”

Lexa turned her attention more fully on the younger nightblood. If Ontari had wanted to come to her private quarters to speak with her, it had to have been about an urgent matter. “What did you want to speak with me about?”

Ontari’s expression fell even further. “Marie” she breathed honestly, before her expression darkened. “And Anya”, she added with more force.

Lexa slowly inclined her head. It made sense now why Ontari seemed to carry guilt as well. The nightblood hadn’t been able to stop the escalation she may have feared would come. Almost gently, she prodded the girl to tell her in detail what had happened during the journey and what they had argued about.

Ontari’s anger was clear when she told the commander about the night at the beginning of their travels, where she had tried to warn Anya. She made no secret about the fac of how much she had detested all the little ways in which Marie changed as the journey had dragged on. From her retelling her growing frustration that she had to watch on powerlessly how what made the younger girl her friend slowly disappeared into a stranger was more than evident.

Lexa’s breath caught slightly in her throat when Ontari reported on the meeting with the Rockline Clan leaders, the child’s growing disinterest in her surroundings and how completely unable she had been to connect with children her own age. Her fury at Anya surged anew and she wished to never have agreed to let Marie leave Polis. The last evening in Polis had already started to show the change in the girl, although Lexa wasn’t sure what exactly had even brought on the beginning of the changes.

Ontari told her from the night where she had found Marie leaned to close to the dying embers, her skin visibly red before she had shoved them out of sight and left. She also told her about the evenings where the child slipped from the camp.

Lexa clenched her teeth at the additional information that Anya had turned a blind eye to this uncharacteristic behavior. Her grip on Marie’s smaller hand tightened until her knuckles showed white beneath her skin, barely containing the fury threatening to bubble over. It was good she had already sent Anya away.

She paused when Ontari continued her retelling with the little moments of comfort and kindness she had seen the general offer to Marie after the meeting with the Rockline Clan elders and the way the child had seemed unable to react to it.

She felt her heart breaking for Marie and Ontari, both. For Marie who had obviously come to the insane conclusion that she had to show only strength now and pushed her suffering into herself. For Ontari who had tried to help, but failed.

Lexa swallowed forcefully. She could gather enough already to know that pulling the child out of her shell if she woke, would surely turn into the most difficult challenge she had ever been confronted with. She immediately corrected her thoughts to “once” she woke. Lexa couldn’t allow herself to even entertain the idea of the young girl not surviving and she would do everything within her power to let child re-learn what it meant to be living instead of just surviving.

“I thought she was just shutting me out because she didn’t want me as a friend anymore” Ontari admitted openly, voice heavy with emotion. “I didn’t think it was because of … this.” The girl obviously didn’t even have exact words for what had happened.

“I wish I had dragged her back to you that first night, no matter what Anya said.” Her jaw clenched immediately as if she was trying to contain herself, but Lexa still saw the unmistakable glistening of tears in her eyes.

The commander looked at the younger nightblood girl with compassion, acknowledging fleetingly just how far Ontari had changed under the influence of Marie’s friendship. While Ontari didn’t have words for what had happened, Lexa did. She had done the same thing often enough herself. Conceal her pain, pull up a mask of strength and try to block out there ever had been pain to begin with. How would she be able to help the young girl recover if Lexa had learned herself all her life that emotions were a weakness which could very well cost you your life?

Movements outside of her chambers interrupted Lexa’s internal musing. Gustus and Loras seemed to have taken up their spaces guarding the entrance to her quarters again. But she heard more movements and could guess that handmaidens had already been called by Laurel to clean up Marie’s blood.

“I’ll be back in a moment” Lexa said quickly, just now remembering the book still on the table in the other room.

Gustus’ expression was clearly worried when she slipped out of her quarters without a single glance at him. Lexa retrieved the book, the dagger and the small pendant from the room just as a pair of handmaidens appeared with buckets of water to clean the stone floor.

“She’s alive?” Gustus asked almost cautiously once Lexa stepped back in front of the entrance to her own quarters.

“Barely so” Lexa’s voice wasn’t much more than a whisper, as her mind still refused to accept that there was a real possibility of the girl not waking up this time. “A Skykru vehicle will bring something to aid Marie’s recovery soon. Have it brought into the capitol without attracting unnecessary attraction.” While her voice remained calm outwardly, thus her own mask was once more firmly in place, internally, Lexa felt the storm still raging on and her fingers curled tighter around the book with the effort not to let them tremble visibly.

Gustus nodded briefly that he understood the order and how dire the situation would be for Lexa to even consider asking Skykru for aid.

The blood had dried on the dagger and the pendant when Lexa let the items drop on the bed just a moment later.

Ontari looked at the wooden pendant with a flash of recognition. “When we entered Polis there was a little boy who offered a gift to Marie. It was the boy whose father helped her make the gifts for you and the general for the ceremony.”

Lexa looked at the little star-shaped pendant. She would have it cleaned thoroughly for Marie to wear once she’d gotten better again. She nodded absentmindedly to the nightblood girl’s words and opened the book on the last used page.

I am sorry I am not enough. I love you.

Lexa felt he heart shatter into tiny pieces at the simple words, surrounded by drops of their daughter’s blood. With tears stinging in her own eyes, Lexa pressed the girl’s lax hand against her own lips, whispering vows to her internally.

You will always be enough, little star.

Chapter 61: Chapter 305

Notes:

(See the end of the chapter for notes.)

Chapter Text

Lexa was still pressing Marie’s smaller finger to her lips when a knock sounded at the door loudly.

The doors were pushed open before the commander could call out, Nyko entered quickly and on his heel was Titus.

The flamekeeper had obviously been informed about the events of the evening. Lexa didn’t know if it would have been a healer who told him, Gustus in his attempt to bring the Skykru delivery into the capitol without unwanted attention or maybe even Anya.

Titus frowned openly at the sight Lexa and Ontari presented. The nightblood girl seemed to consider letting go of Marie’s hand and her grip faltered for a moment, before she simply lowered her head, obviously choosing to ignore the bald man for now. Lexa had already sat a little straighter at his entrance, lowering the girl’s hand back onto the bed, but still keeping the contact.

“Is this truly necessary?” Titus’s question landed into the silence like a little explosion. The man made a vague movement with his hand over Nyko’s form carrying a pack clearly coming from Skykru. “When the clans hear of this, it won’t be only whispers any longer.” The warning rang sharp and clear.

Lexa felt her fury boil close to the surface immediately. She would not allow her former teacher to lecture or question her now. Her daughter would need all of her attention in the upcoming days.

“I deemed it necessary, teacher” Lexa brought the words forth through clenched teeth. She felt the little residual warmth of Marie’s skin between her palms. Although she itched to stand from the bed and face Titus outright, she wouldn’t let go of her daughter while breathing was still nothing but a weak whisper.

Nyko stepped closer to the bed with a serious expression. He held the pack a little tighter, probably not putting it past Titus to rip the alien thing from him out of pure fear their customs would be broken. “She won’t live to see another morning without this” the healer said simply. He couldn’t be completely certain, but it seemed as if the girl’s skin had even grown paler while they had waited for Skykru’s help to arrive.

Lexa hadn’t expected for Ontari to voice her opinion, but the younger nightblood actually spoke up against Titus. “What does it matter where it comes from if it can save her?”

Titus eyes narrowed immediately on the girl and a vein visibly throbbed on his temple. Lexa could imagine that he would be torn about the situation as well. But to her he was torn for the wrong reasons. When her flamekeeper looked at her daughter, he saw a tool. A tool which may be able to save the commander’s life. He saw political complications. But Lexa also knew the clans, whatever she did, there would always be a clan finding something wrong with a decision she had just made.

She knew the concept of a blood transfusion. She knew from Anya that the Mountain Men had caught their people for this very purpose. The thought of getting someone else’s blood into your body felt alien and dangerous to the commander. And still, if the clans would realize that this blood transfusion could safe a mother after a difficult birth, the chances for them to consider using it would rise. She remembered Clarke describing this as one potential situation where a blood transfusion could make the difference between life and death.

Wouldn’t the clans be more inclined to accept this small piece of Skykru’s tech, their advanced medical knowledge, if they heard of the commander’s daughter being saved with it?

“Begin, Nyko” she voiced the order with sharpness. She still held onto Marie’s hand when she looked back at Titus, gaze unwavering. “This knowledge will not belong to Skykru alone. It will belong to all of us. Tonight, it will save my daughter. Tomorrow, it may save the clans’ children. That is the story you will tell them tomorrow, Titus. And you will tell it well.”

Surprise flitted over her former teacher’s features briefly.

“The clans want Skykru’s tech to be under my control. This is the first step towards that” Lexa continued strongly. “Anya can hold the meetings with you. I will be here at least as long as it takes for her to wake again.”

The surprise on Titus features first switched to a small sliver of agreement, before his expression darkened. Lexa knew the general and the flamekeeper had never seen eye to eye on anything.

But she didn’t want Anya here right now and she refused to leave her chambers until she was sure her daughter survived. Lexa doubted Anya would be very happy about the order, but the older woman wouldn’t dare question her right now. Anya would be very aware that she could still decide to ban her from Polis and thus seeing Marie ever again if she pleased.

In the meantime, Nyko had started to distribute the supplies Abby had packed on the bed. Ontari had reluctantly let go of the younger girl’s hand and made room for him, retreating to the head of the bed.

Risha sniffed at the things curiously. Thankfully, the wolf didn’t growl at them. When Lexa made a clicking sound with her tongue sharply, the animal obediently turned to her, jumping from the bed once Lexa motioned it to.

When Nyko turned the child’s arm around Lexa’s breath staggered. Crimson had started to seep through the bright material in a few spots, showing clearly that the bleeding hadn’t been stopped completely yet.

Nyko fastened an elastic band around the child’s upper arm, pulling it tight so exert pressure and constrict the blood flow. Marie hadn’t cut higher than the crook of her arm, so, Nyko was still able to feel the exposed delicate skin there for the vein beneath.

Lexa watched the healer sharply. Whatever it was he used to clean the child’s skin just a moment later had a weird biting scent. She tightened her grasp on the girl’s smaller hand when Nyko pulled out the piece which was supposed to go into Marie’s arm. She hoped the child didn’t feel the additional poke as the healer forced the metal into the crook of her arm.

Her brows furrowed when a small amount of the girl’s blood immediately started to drip from the thing. She thought this was supposed to give the child blood back and not remove even more.

“This is normal” Nyko said quickly, sensing the shift not just from the commander but from the nightblood girl who had stepped closer sharply as well.

Lexa recognized the blood bag; she had seen something like this stored in a chamber in the Mountain before they had destroyed it. Once the healer had connected the blood bag to the thing which now rested in the girl’s arm, he held the bed high above his head.

It obviously wasn’t the wonder healing Lexa had internally hoped for. For long moments she wasn’t sure if anything was happening at all, until she noticed that the blood bag in Nyko’s hand had thinned visibly.

Titus watched the proceedings with an even deeper frown. “That’s supposed to save her?” he echoed critically.

“It will” Nyko promised with a confidence he wasn’t feeling yet. He had already seen that Abby had packed at least two more blood bags. It would take a while until he would have managed to administer all of them. A syringe had been in the pack as well with a short note, telling him that it was a strong antibiotic and to inject it once the blood had been given. He knew that an infection would most certainly be too much strain on the girl’s body now.

Lexa watched on how drop by drop the first blood bag finally got noticeably emptier.

Her mind brought her back to speaking with Anya the first time after the woman woke after her ordeal of the Mountain. The horror her previous first had spoken off she had seen. Lexa shuddered slightly at the thought that the weirdly shining small tubing which now connected Marie’s arm to the blood bag, which was supposed to save her, would most likely be the same or at least similar to what the Mountain Men had used.

Titus obviously wasn’t fully settled yet. The flamekeeper’s dark eyes looked at the blood bag like it was a weapon, not something meant to save lives. “Heda, the clans will call it rightful punishment, if she dies besides this.”

Lexa’s eyes flashed dangerously from where she had watched the thin tubing gleam in the fire light to her former teacher’s face. She refused to think about Marie dying. If the child did, she wasn’t entirely certain she’d wish to see another day either.

“This will belong to all of us” Lexa repeated with conviction, refusing to show how rattled the man’s left her internally.

“And if she survives and the clans learn that she was saved by foreign blood, they will call her tainted” Titus retorted vehemently.

Lexa’s jaw clenched and her fingers tightened around Marie’s smaller fragile hand as her own agitation rose. She didn’t care in this moment what the clans would exactly think. It only mattered that Marie survived, no matter what had to be done to achieve it. Lexa knew, that as the commander such thinking was highly dangerous. She knew, she could end up with another war at hand, if she didn’t get the coalition under firm control again. But now wasn’t the time to argue about that. Now wasn’t the time where she needed to think as the commander, right now, at this bed she was foremost the woman who had accepted this child as her own.

“They won’t because I won’t allow that” Lexa said fiercely and stared her flamekeeper down. She wouldn’t allow endless critics from her former teacher either. Titus, as well as the ambassadors, and the clans, were her subjects and she was the one in power. They would have to accept her decision until the mantle of command went to another nightblood.

Titus seemed in the mood to push even further. “The clans won’t stop at calling her tainted. They will call her weakness. They will ask how a child who turned her blade on herself can stand beside the Commander.”

Lexa’s breathing sharpened and her eyes narrowed, while she internally felt close to exploding with rage. No one beside those in the room, in addition to Anya and Laurel knew exactly what had transpired tonight. There was no reason to make it public. And even if it ever did become public, she would personally crush anyone with her bare hands who dared to use Marie’s spiraled pain against her daughter. She itched to reach towards the dagger still lying between the furs and start by making an example of Titus. But she reigned in her bubbling fury, doing so wouldn’t help Marie.

“I will not hear more of this now” Lexa added in a deathly tone ringing with finality, while her green eyes blazed dangerously. “Search for Anya and discuss with her what you’ll say at the meeting to broadcast the story in the way I ordered.”

Titus ground his teeth together visibly, still, faced with the commander’s unmovable resistance, he bowed and left the commander’s quarters finally. The man also knew the commander well enough to read from her barely contained fury that he had overstepped his role.

Ontari watched the proceedings with a burning urge to help. Earlier she had been the one to try and contain Marie’s life by physical strength alone. Now, standing beside the bed, simply having to watch felt almost unbearable.

The nightblood girl had never seen a blood transfusion or anything about Skykru’s healing techniques yet. Azgeda warriors hadn’t been as affected by the Mountain, as the clans closer to it. So, Ontari had only heard whispered stories about the horrors this place had cast in its shadows.

The younger girl looked awfully small and fragile right now, lying in the middle of the huge bed, buried under furs. Risha had jumped up on the bed again and laid across the child’s feet. The wolf seemed careful not to be in the way of Nyko working on Marie but refused to be separated completely from its human.

She hoped she wasn’t imagining it that the child’s features seemed just a tiny shade less pale.

Lexa continued to hold onto the small hand for what felt like endless hours. Although the callouses which must have formed during the last few weeks of being pushed through harsh training by Anya and hours of travel would delude anyone into thinking the child had grown strong. Lexa knew this to be an illusion. The child’s thin finger had never felt frailer in her grip. Cautiously she let a finger glide in a continuous motion over the girl’s knuckles, hoping that somewhere deep inside Marie would feel the touch and its soothing intent.

Even though the young girl hadn’t even been in their lives for two summers yet, Lexa had far too often already feared the child lost.

She breathed a sigh of relieve that felt as if the weight of the whole world fell from her shoulders, when Nyko bent down, felt along Marie’s throat for a moment and nodded approvingly. “Her pulse is a little stronger” he proclaimed, before switching the empty blood bag to the next one.

Lexa’s hope rekindled into a burning inferno internally and she wished with all her might that she had the power to wake the young girl up and see the confirmation that the child hadn’t left her with her own eyes.

But that wakened a whole new level of fear. The child had flinched at the base of the tower simply because she had placed a hand on her shoulder, an innocent gesture, the briefest of physical contact. How could she ever hope to proof to her daughter that she had always been enough? Somewhere, and Lexa wasn’t entirely certain when or how it had happened, Marie must have started to believe that their love was conditional, attached to strings. The few words the child had scribbled into the book before she had turned the dagger against herself made that crystal clear.

If she had been part of the journey or if the changes had appeared longer in Polis, Lexa knew she could have at least tried to counter the believes which must have started to twist the child’s mind against herself.

She had been trained from a young age to inspire motivation in warriors. She had learned all about battle strategies. She had practiced diplomacy and how to settle unrest between the clans. She had been drilled to perfection in each and every weapon which was used in the clans. She knew the history of their people by heart. But no one had ever prepared her on how to teach a child that love was never meant to be conditional.

Now that the storm in her mind was slowly beginning to settle, Lexa thought about everything they knew about Marie.

The girl had been born among the stars, watched her mother dying from an incurable illness, been locked up and held in isolation for a year, before having been deemed expendable and sent to earth with the other delinquents.

Lexa wondered briefly what the loss of her parents and the consequent isolation might have really done to such a young mind? The way the girl had started to trust first Anya and then later her were proof enough of just how much the child craved to belong.

Here among her own people Marie had found a new place, but had to learn a complete alien culture and how to survive here. The girl had thought her new mentor to be lost just a few days after starting to feel the first sliver of stability.

The child had found her healing abilities which nearly had killed her by the aneurysm later on. Lexa would never forget how they had waited for days in the medical bay of Arkadia, surrounded by foreign metal walls and weirdly smelling stale air. Waking up to see the child’s blonde hair reddened by bleeding from her ears would forever remain one of her own night terrors now.

The girl had lived through the horror of Mount Weather and how Lexa herself had to abandon her there, being left unable to walk for weeks. Her mind had been twisted against the commander in the aftermath. Although Marie had recovered from that ordeal, now that Lexa looked back, they had never been able to offer the girl a true sense of security and stability. The girl had been abducted by Ontari briefly, only to find an unlikely friend in the nightblood girl.

Lexa been forced to make many political decisions she regretted on a personal level, no matter that she knew those to have been the only viable options from a political stance, having been forced to accept the conditions of the deal with the Mountain Men was surely one of the worst. Marie’s screams as she had been dragged beneath the Mountain was something Lexa would not forget until her own last breath.

Marie had seen torture and executions, even walked into war with them. The darkest period of time would surely have been the loss of her memories and the cruel torture she had survived under Nia. Lexa wished she could have spared their daughter from all the horrors she had been subjected to in her brief time on earth.

The girl had fallen sick just a little later, thinking to suffer from the disease which had killed her mother. She had experienced her body giving out on her, only to wake up again, seemingly healthy. But had the child’s mind truly ever recovered?

Now she had been instrumented by Alie and pushed through harsh training by Anya, without Lexa’s presence to gentle the experience. Was it really a wonder the child’s mind had finally snapped?

Nyko seemed either solely concentrated on the blood transfusion or was too professional as a healer to allow himself any kind of judgement. His attention was on Marie’s faintly rising and falling chest as each drop agonizingly slowly went from the blood bag into the girl’s weak body.

The silence after Titus’s departure felt heavier, only interrupted by the occasional crackle of the fire and Risha’s loud breathing. Marie’s breaths weren’t more than a faint whisper in the vast room.

Ontari had sat down on the corner of the large mattress, one of her hands hovering uncertainly close to the younger girl’s head, where here blonde hair had fanned out over the pillow. Her expression still looked deeply troubled. “When we fought earlier, she said that she didn’t want me. That I should keep out of her business” the nightblood paused for a moment, internally regretting that she hadn’t pushed harder into the girl’s business during their journey. “I thought it was just her being angry with me. She looked at me like I had somehow become her enemy. I didn’t think she was already … planning this.”

Lexa looked up at the nightblood, her own internal thoughts interrupted for now. “You couldn’t have known” she slightly shook her head sadly. She didn’t place blame with Ontari for what had happened. If the older girl hadn’t come up in order to speak to her, who knew how long she and Anya would have continued fighting before they would have started to wonder why Marie hadn’t joined them yet. She couldn’t know for certain, but somehow Lexa had a feeling that they wouldn’t have been able to find their daughter in time for her to even still have a chance at survival now. But hearing that Marie had apparently pushed away her friend like that as well, didn’t bode well with her. She knew that Marie had trusted the nightblood girl before, she had told Ontari things about the time with Nia earlier than she had told them.

“She still loves you though. Even when she pushed me away, I could see it. She never stopped looking for you.” Ontari said with a hint of bitterness to her words.

Lexa looked at the younger nightblood with the ghost of a sad smile pulling on her lips. She really hoped Ontari to be right, she didn’t know if anyone even still stood a chance to reach the girl, if she had truly stopped caring for all of them.

Her fingers were gentle while she continued stroking over Marie’s smaller hand. She had allowed her general to take the girl out of her sight, unknowingly letting the girl be forged beneath steel and the illusion of strength. They had apparently both forgotten that Marie was their child, before she was a warrior.

Notes:

And was always: I am very happy to see some readers still remain here.
And thank you all very much for each and every interaction with my story =)

Chapter 62: Chapter 306

Notes:

(See the end of the chapter for notes.)

Chapter Text

It was Alira who entered the commander’s quarters next.

The second blood bag was still connected to Marie’s fragile arm, not yet completely drained. The child’s breathing still nothing but a soft whisper.

The handmaid carried a tray laden with food and strongly smelling tea. The woman placed the tray on a table close to the bed, probably aware that Lexa wouldn’t leave her daughter out of her immediate sight just to sit at a table and eat.

The older woman had obviously already been informed, she didn’t look surprised or shocked at the scene in the commander’s quarters. Neither did she speak at first. She hovered near the bed, exchanging a questioning glance with the healer. She had grown to care personally for the blonde child and her expression portrayed how touched she was by the events of the night.

“She’ll need your strength” Alira finally turned to the commander once a few moments had passed in silence and no one moved towards the tray with offered food.

Lexa’s lips thinned slightly and her grip on Marie’s smaller hand tightened minutely. Even the distance to the small table meant letting go of Marie’s hand to reach for the food and it felt too far. She didn’t feel hungry either.

“Jona told me your dinner remained untouched as well” Alira turned her attention to the nightblood girl. The handmaid had seen the friendship between the girls developing and although it was controversial and their bond unexpected, she had seen how the nightblood had mourned for the blonde girl when she had been assumed to be travelling to her death.

Ontari regarded the handmaid with a slight frown. She hadn’t known the servants were keeping watch to how much she ate. She wondered if such a thing may come from the commander’s order, or even the general’s. For all gruffness of the older Trikru woman, she watched them carefully. Her stomach still felt unsettled, and she doubted she could keep anything down.

When the older woman continued staring at her silently, obviously intent on waiting her out, Ontari huffed under her breath. If she didn’t feel like food, maybe the handmaid would be placated if she at least had some tea. She turned sideways and stretched out her free hand to take a cup of tea. Steam still gently curled from the surface of the liquid and a sweeter note in the smell hinted it to have been sweetened with honey.

The handmaid nodded her acceptance and turned her attention back to the commander. “What would you like, commander?”

“Nothing” Lexa immediately retorted. “I will eat once she’s awake” she added in a firm tone.

Alira exchanged a silent gaze with Nyko. The handmaid had seen this before. The young commander had refused food at first when her love’s head had been brought to her bed. It had taken Anya and her more than three days to finally convince the grieving woman that she needed nourishment to continue in her position. She could let it slide for tonight and Alira internally direly hoped that Marie would wake some time before first light.

The crackle of the fire took over the silence again and Alira waited for a few silent moments longer before she finally slightly inclined her head and with one last glance at the young girl looking so pale in the huge bed, she left the commander’s quarters.

“You should eat though” Lexa addressed Ontari not unkindly. The nightblood girl appeared paler than usual in the dim light. She doubted they would have had more than breakfast during journey, Anya most likely pushing the group to reach Polis quicker. She would need to figure out how to proceed with Ontari and the general now. The way the younger nightblood had glared at her retreating former mentor didn’t bode well for their relationship. Lexa stopped herself from thinking about this subject too much. It didn’t matter, at least not in this moment. She resumed gently stroking over the child’s knuckles again.

The wolf also huffed under its breath, Risha’s head lifted from the girl’s knees for a moment.

Lexa watched the animal’s movements for a second before her own gaze turned to Marie as well. Was the wolf sensing something they couldn’t yet?

But nothing seemed to change about Marie’s condition. Lexa internally counted the small rise and falls of the girl’s chest, while the blood ran into her arm blood by blood, agonizingly slow.

She looked at the younger nightblood again. “Eat” she repeated this time as a weak order.

Ontari sighed slightly but reached out blindly with visibly shaking fingers towards the tray, picking something up randomly, a bread roll. Eating it seemed to be a fight for her right now as well, each bite chewed and swallowed slowly. “She didn’t even complain about the food, you know? Even when there was only dry bread and dried meat for days there wasn’t a single hint of complaint from her.”

Lexa listened to her words with a frown. That indeed didn’t sound like her daughter at all. The child had argued with them countless times about having to drink bitter teas to settle her stomach or arguing to get a honey cake instead of real food.

She hoped it had truly only been changes the child had forced on herself in the misguided belief that she needed to be like this now.

Still, her mind was torn now.

The political fallout could be disastrous if things played out badly. Even if she may have lost trust in Anya as a mother figure, she knew as her general the woman wouldn’t let her down. So, the immediate fallout would be dealt with by Anya and her flamekeeper, no matter how unwilling the man was right now, he would be obliged to follow her orders as well.

What weighed far heavier on her was Marie’s fate. How could they help the girl recover once she woke? What would she need?

The commander considered calling Clarke or Abby again. The Skykru healer had given them valuable information on how to deal with trauma in children before already. Did those things apply the same now? Or did this change things?

Lexa didn’t know and that scared her more than she cared to admit, even to herself. The last thing she wanted was to do something wrong out of ignorance on how to best proceed. She didn’t believe that Anya had pushed the child like this out of malice. Anya had pushed her through relentless training as a child as well and she knew that general had been convinced this to be necessary.

What would the child say or do once she finally woke up? Would she be back to her old self immediately?

Lexa could already guess that the probability was high for her daughter to continue to try pushing her away. She knew that she couldn’t let her.

“You will need all your strength once she wakes as well” Nyko suddenly pulled the commander from her internal thoughts.

“I will be fine” Lexa retorted and felt annoyance creep into her tone slowly.

“I mean it” Nyko added with a serious expression. “Dealing with her will be more difficult than you can imagine. These were far too deep to have happened on accident. She wanted this.”

Lexa felt her throat tighten at the thought and her grip on the girl’s fingers tightened as if she could hold onto her life simply by pure willpower. She had already realized that Marie must have done this intentionally, but a part of her mind refused to accept this. “You’ve seen this before?” she questioned in what she aimed to be a calm tone.

Ontari seemed to listen closer as well, while Risha’s ear only flicked.

“Not exactly” the healer denied with a slight shake of his head, still holding the blood bag above his head. “It hadn’t been a child. But similar wounds.”

Lexa gentled her grip on the girl’s smaller hand again. “Did they recover?” the way her stomach clenched she wasn’t certain if she even wanted to know the answer.

Nyko looked torn for a moment. “At first.” He said in a grave tone and his expression seemed far away for a moment before he slightly shook his head. Sadness was visible in his blue eyes as he offered, “The body healed, but the mind couldn’t.”

Lexa nodded faintly as this was exactly what she feared most. The mind wasn’t like a broken limb which could be splintered and healed on its own with time. It may be left crooked, but it would heal. There was no cast or anything which could be put within the mind to aid healing.

“She’ll need to be watched” Nyko continued grimly. “She will not be able to be left alone, not even for a moment.” His gaze swiftly swept to the door of the balcony. “We don’t know how desperate she is. There are more than enough ways where a moment is enough, and no healer will be able to help.”

Lexa’s breath caught in her throat at the implication, and she was powerless to stop her mind from conjuring an image. A brief flash of blonde hair through the balcony door, a battered small body at the base of the tower. The commander clenched her jaw and nodded. She understood. Nyko wasn’t trying to scare her; he was speaking from experience as a healer.

Nyko took a plate from the tray and held it into the direction of the commander mutely.

Lexa accepted it with a slight incline of her head. The food seemed to turn to dust in her mouth, but she had forced herself into eating often enough to be able to ignore the feeling. The healer was right; she would need her strength for Marie.

Nyko bend down and felt the child’s pulse on her throat again, nodding again. Satisfied for the moment with the girl’s pulse slowly getting stronger beneath her fair skin.

Ontari seemed struck by the words as well. Regret was painted openly on her features, and she held Marie’s smaller hand between her own now. “If only I hadn’t let her run of. She may have hated me then, but that would have been better than this” the nightblood girl said with her shoulders hunched under the oppressive weight of her own guilt.

Lexa shook her head sadly. “She would have found another moment.” Ontari wasn’t to blame in this scenario and Nyko’s words still rung within her.

She had stopped eating and pressed the small fingers against her lips again. Internally she vowed to Marie that she wouldn’t let her daughter slip away. Not from the blood loss now, and surely not later from whatever ate at her mind.

She would need help from others though. Even if she could let Titus and Anya handle meetings for a few days, she still couldn’t be with Marie nonstop. Would going to the bathroom for a moment already pose a risk?

Lexa guessed it would be better to indeed make sure the child wasn’t alone at all after she woke until they were sure she wouldn’t try again. She didn’t want to consider having to live through this a second time.

The night already felt worse than any physical torture ever would. She had no idea just how long they already sat at the bed, waiting just for the smallest sign that Marie hadn’t slipped away, was still there, and would wake again. 

She was fairly certain Ontari would be the first to volunteer or rather insist on being one of those to keep Marie company. Lexa was hesitant to consider Anya; she didn’t want the general alone with their daughter until the mere idea stopped making her skin crawl with thoughts of everything that could go wrong.

Choosing who would be allowed to be with Marie would also highly depend on the girl’s behavior. Lexa would trust Aden for example of being capable to watch Marie, but it would necessitate Marie to at least accept his presence.

Lexa couldn’t stop her mind fully from thinking in political terms. How could she frame staying at the child’s beside for a few days as strength of herself? She guessed she would need to appeal to their own connection to their families. A strong parent and a strong commander would guard their children for days if necessary.

If she could prevent the full extent of tonight’s events coming to light, Lexa would highly prefer that. She hoped that there would only be whispers of her daughter having fallen ill. As she had just came back from a long journey, it wasn’t unlikely either that she caught something on the road.

The wind outside of the tower howled eerily and Lexa sat a little straighter for a moment, hearing her spine align itself again after having sat hunched next to Marie’s unconscious form for hours already.

Exhaustion was starting to pull at Lexa’s mind. Nyko switched to the last blood bag having been supplied by Skykru a while ago. Lexa looked up at the blood bag, it was at least halfway drained she guessed.

Ontari had slumped sideway slightly, leaning against the headboard of the bed and her eyes had closed against her own will.

Risha’s bright blue eyes were fixed on Marie, and they almost seemed to glow in the dimness of the vast room.

“If you want to rest…” Nyko let his words trail off, having spoken in a soft tone, obviously intent on letting the nightblood girl sleep undisturbed.

Lexa immediately shook her head. She didn’t want to sleep now. She refused. She had been on sentry duty many times before, not getting any sleep during the night at all. She wanted to be awake when Marie finally stirred. She needed to be there. The child must have thought their love lost for far too long to allow her to think this the truth even for a second longer than necessary.

Still, as time stretched on, Lexa felt her body betraying her resolve. Even though she tried to keep focused solely on the thin chest falling and rising so softly, she may have completely missed the movement buried beneath the thick furs, her eyes started to burn from the exertion of keeping them open forcefully.

Once Risha picked up its head again, looking up at the girl with a tilt to its head, Lexa began to hope once more.

Ontari remained asleep, while one of her hands still loosely held onto Marie’s smaller hand.

Lexa felt her own head dip slightly as fatigue threatened to take over. She strengthened her resolve to stay awake, rolling her shoulders slightly to get some movement and wake herself up further.

Nyko felt the child’s pulse once more when the blood bag had finally drained. He retrieved the prepared syringe of antibiotics and injected them before he carefully removed the intravenous line, pressing a clean piece of wrapping on the small wounds where drops of blood immediately welled.

“Changing them can wait until morning” he assessed under his breath as he inspected the girl’s wrapped arms. “Her pulse is far stronger again.”

Lexa breathed out deeply, feeling some of the weight lift of her shoulders. No matter what Titus, Anya, or the clans would say to this, having called on Skykru for help had been the right decision and if needed Lexa would defend this until her last breath.

“I will not leave. Not now, not ever again.” Lexa formulated the vow in her mind as she pressed another kiss to the child’s hand.

She almost jerked back out of pure surprise when she thought to feel a faint twitch from the child’s fingers. “She moved” she said lowly to Nyko.

The healer looked at the girl’s hand, or what he could see from it while the commander still held on. “It may just have been reflexes” he cautioned. He was rather optimistic himself now that the girl indeed had survived the actual attempt. If she would survive the aftermath, would remain to be seen during the next days and weeks. He knew that such things were difficult to predict. If the child had indeed become as proficient at acting as it had sounded like, it would be even more difficult to help her. He knew sadly that it wasn’t possible to force someone to continue living if they had truly lost their will to survive. He could only hope for the commander and the sweet child that the girl would allow herself to be helped.

Lexa frowned slightly, clearly not satisfied with his words and the way the commander now looked at the girl made it abundantly clear that the woman would hold onto this hope with all her stubbornness.

Nyko regarded the commander for a moment. He remembered Marie from TonDC just a few days after the first 100 from Skykru had crashed into Trikru lands. The child had never been like one of their own and no matter how well she would integrate into their culture, he doubted she would truly ever be like their children. The way the young leader loved the girl was palpable in every breath the woman took right now. Marie may not be hers by blood, but that didn’t make the commander any less of her mother now. As a healer he knew well that there was more to life than brute strength and he feared what influence truly losing the child would have on their leader. The commander may still be there, but the woman beneath would be utterly crushed.

Risha did more than just pick up its head, no, the wolf actually stood up from the child’s legs when Marie’s breathing hitched audibly. The child’s lips parted slightly, but she continued to breath shallowly again, and no further movement occurred.

Risha huffed loudly and laid down over the girl’s legs again, blue eyes not leaving her features.

Impatience slowly started to etch onto the commander’s features and her grip tightened on the smaller hand once again. “Come on, little star” she thought with all her will, wishing for the ability to reach within the girl’s mind and pull her forth to alertness again.

She sighed under her breath. It takes as long as it takes. The teaching rang through her mind and Lexa had never before hated one of her lessons more than she did right now. She had always prided herself with her own patience. It seemed to fail her now though, the stakes of waiting seemed to grow with every second ticking by slowly.

When Lexa looked over to the door of the balcony, Lexa thought she could already faintly recognize the first hints of the sky changing as the sun prepared to rise. Her daughter had lived through the night, and she would wake up again. That was all that mattered right now.

When she looked back at Marie, she thought to see the child’s eyes flutter. It was only once and it didn’t happen again, but Lexa still felt relieved.

Nyko had seen it this time as well and the healer nodded with a satisfied expression, now convinced as well that the girl was on the verge of regaining consciousness.

The night hadn’t taken the child from her and the commander wouldn’t let the day take her daughter either.

Notes:

Hello lovely readers =)
And thanks to thomasSK for pointing out that I bypassed 1 Mio words. Truly amazing =)

So, there are two things I'd like some input on.

1. Even though I have quite a lot still planned for this story, it is at a point where I could close it off tragically very soon. So, I could let Marie die from complications. Or just continue on, even though this has gotten insanely massive already.

Let me know what you think =)

2. Titus could get an even more evil role, leading to him being executed a few chapters down the line. Right now, his opinions are clear but he doesn't outright orchestrate something against Marie, but I have the option to weave that in.

Chapter 63: Chapter 307

Chapter Text

The sun was starting to ascend visibly outside and with it, the sky started to turn in hues of dark blue, where the night still clung to it, purple, subtle shades of pink, orange and, finally bright yellow.

Marie finally began to stir in earnest when the faintest hints of yellow had started to turn into a bright shining band just beneath the clouds.

Risha had picked its head up, ears twitching and tail starting to wag.

Lexa sat up straighter when she felt the girl’s fingers within her own twitch. This time, it wasn’t just a faint flutter, but a stronger movement.

Ontari jolted awake as well on Marie’s other side, as she had also felt Marie’s hand move beneath her own touch even in sleep. The nightblood seemed honestly confused for a second, as if her mind needed a moment to catch up why she had been sleeping in a sitting position, not in her own quarters, but in the commander’s, holding onto Marie’s small hand through the night.

“She wakes up” Ontari said with a throaty voice, still heavy with sleep. Her expression flickered between relief and something which started to settle in Lexa’s mind as well, anticipation. They had no way of knowing how the girl would truly react once she woke and that anticipation was a new form of torture.

Lexa shuffled closer on the bed, leaning slightly over her child’s smaller form when the girl’s eyes began to flutter visibly. She still stroked over the girl’s knuckles softly.

The first thing Marie felt was how warm her hands were. She had assumed death to be cold, her muddled mind didn’t understand how she could be so warm. A weight was pressed over her legs, and she felt soft furs around her, smelled them, together with the faint hint of smoke from a fire. Marie didn’t know what she had expected from death truly, but she had pictured blackness, coldness, being alone, floating forever in nothing. If death was indeed warm and welcoming, she could gladly live with that.

The girl’s eyes finally opened just as a soft whimper passed by her lips. She appeared confused and disorientated, eyes flicking around the unexpected surroundings for a moment.

Still, Lexa’s hands felt roughened and Risha’s weight too heavy. Could she be dreaming? Was this another one of Alie’s hallucinations?

“Mo…” the child’s voice was faint and barely above a whisper. Something flickered in her grey eyes and her body tensed as she paused what she was going to say. It was as if some invisible hand pulled the strings taut around the child again. “Commander?” she breathed out instead, voice still cracking and obviously grappling for the mask she had tried to keep upright for weeks now. It was brittle and the girl’s body shook slightly with the exertion, but it was still there.

The girl instinctively pulled at her hands, Ontari was too surprised to hold on strong enough and felt the child’s smaller fingers slip from her grasp. The hand was immediately pressed against a small chest almost in physical defense.

“You’re still here…” Ontari’s whisper sounded lost in the vast room, hanging in the silence filled with astonishment, as if the older girl hadn’t dared herself to hope.

Lexa felt her heart shatter at the sound, and the child’s words, at the sight of her daughter reaching for distance even now in her weakest moment. She didn’t fight it when her own eyes filled with tears and for once in her life, she didn’t try to remain strong and not show weakness. She wasn’t sure if she had the strength left to anyway. Her vision blurred, and her voice came out low, ragged, and unshielded. “My little star…”

Her grip on Marie’s hand loosened slightly, only so she could slide even closer and lean fully over the fragile form of her daughter. With a gentleness that belied her title, Lexa reached out and brushed a damp strand of blonde hair back from the girl’s brow, trying hard not to show how the child’s subtle flinch at the movement and touch, struck her internally worse than any blow ever had. Her fingertips trembled visibly as they lingered against her temple for a moment too long. She leaned forward until she could press her lips to the child’s brow and place a lingering kiss there, simply feeling the warmth of her skin beneath her lips for a moment. The girl lived; she hadn’t succeeded in her attempt. She knew the war they were going to face with Marie of convincing her differently again would be more a siege than a brief battle. She turned her head slightly, so, Lexa could rest her own forehead against the girl’s slightly damp skin, as if trying to tether her to the world with the force of a physical anchor alone. Lexa felt her tears run down her own face and fall onto Marie’s skin hotly.

The girl’s lashes fluttered and for a moment, her mask faltered again. The smallest tremor ran through her lips, as if she wanted to say something or to cry, but no sound passed by her them. Instead, her fingers twitched weakly in Lexa’s grasp, torn between holding on and trying to pull them away forcefully.

Risha who had still been stretched out protectively across Marie’s legs, tail still waging, gave a sharp whine and nudged the child’s side with its muzzle. The wolf’s bright blue eyes fixed on the girl with a desperate loyalty only an animal could give, although it was rivalled in the dark eyes of Ontari with a fiery protectiveness. Marie’s grey eyes flicked down towards the movement, and a tear welled visibly at the corner of her eye. The girl was still obviously trying hard to keep herself from breaking.

“Hey, you don’t need this mask with me,” Lexa whispered fiercely, as she leaned back slightly, not wanting to crowd and overwhelm the child even more. She pressed a kiss to the girl’s knuckles gently. “Not ever. You have and always will be enough, little star.”

For a heartbeat, there was no commander, no coalition, no waiting politics, simply a mother begging her daughter not to give up.

The fragility of the moment was broken when Nyko cleared his throat rather loudly. Apparently, Marie hadn’t even been aware of the man’s presence until now. Lexa felt the girl’s hand tremble, where she still held onto it.

“The bandages should be changed, now that she’s awake” the healer declared in a soft tone, apparently more to Lexa than to Marie, as the commander looked at him darkly.

Marie looked down at her arms with a slight frown and her features paled drastically if that was even possible. “I … fai…failed?” she croaked out in a broken whisper.

The child’s words, laced with such raw desperation and the haunted look which took ever her grey eyes, threatened to rip Lexa apart. Had the girl not remembered during waking what had happened?

Internally, Lexa froze at her daughter’s words. “Failed” the word echoed through her mind for a stretched out second. Her own chest constricted sharply, she had broken tradition and risked political outfall just for her child to have a chance at the survival. She had prepared herself for the girl’s tears, possibly for her anger, even for drawn-out silence. But she hadn’t prepared for this, not for her daughter seeing her own survival as some kind of defeat, as if she had lost a precious battle.

The commander knew how the fallout would look like if any of the clans learned what exactly had transpired and especially how the child thought about her own survival at this moment. They wouldn’t just whisper about weakness; they would scream it. And Lexa, she would slaughter everyone who would even dare to think of this as weakness.

“You did not fail” Lexa retorted instantly, voice breaking despite herself. She leaned forward again, cupping the girl’s trembling hand between both of hers, as if she could will her warmth beneath the child’s pale skin. “You are here, that is the greatest victory.”

A storm seemed to rage within Marie’s grey eyes, while she faintly shook her head against the pillow, her lips pressing into a thin, bloodless line. Tears slipped down her temples, even as she tried to turn her face away, hiding behind damp strands of blonde hair.

Lexa saw Ontari’s hand twitching, hovering close to Marie’s head, as if she wanted to reach out again, but the nightblood stopped herself at the last moment. Lexa saw her dark eyes flicking towards her with a helpless expression, laden with pain.

Nyko bent closer over Marie as well. His expression was of a professional healer, but his tone was softer than usual. “You lost much blood” he told the girl quietly, as if grounding her in the facts of what had happened might anchor her clearly spiraling mind. “Your body is fighting to hold on. You are alive.”

Marie tried to contain a flinch, when the healer reached out and felt her throat for her pulse again. Nyko’s teeth clenched; the girl’s pulse was racing now while her mind tried to process what had happened.

The child’s grey eyes flicked toward him briefly, wide, and frightened, before darting back to Lexa. “Alive…” she echoed the healer’s word faintly. The look in her grey eyes hollow, as though she couldn’t understand why it happened or why her survival mattered.

Lexa leaned down further, forcing herself into the girl’s line of sight. She wouldn’t let the child retreat behind that false mask again. Her voice was fierce, although her hands still trembled where they now framed the girl’s face gently. “You breathe, you are mine. You are loved. You are enough. That is all that matters, there is no failure in that.”

Marie’s breath shuddered audibly and her whole frame seemed to tremble. She saw the tears glistening on the commander’s face as well, felt them being mirrored on her own skin. She felt Risha’s muzzle lying on her lower stomach heavily, felt the wolf’s breath ruffle the furs around her softly. She had seen Ontari’s shadow hover behind her, had felt the older girl’s hands holding on softly, before she had pulled her fingers from her unexpected grasp.

Someone was missing though, and Marie felt her heart sink into her stomach. “Anya…” she croaked out, eyes flicked around the room briefly, somehow hoping beside herself to spot the general somewhere. Bitterness twisted her stomach hotly. “She left.”

Lexa immediately shook her head and cussed internally. If the girl already asked after the general now, there would be no arguing with her that a separation, even only temporarily, from the woman would be needed for healing. The way the child seemed to vanish in front of her, grey eyes going blank, shoulders curling inward ever so slightly, was proof enough that Marie took Anya’s absence only as a sign of how disappointed or angry the general was. She didn’t see it as Lexa’s punishment for the general, but as punishment from the general for herself. “I ordered her away” Lexa still proclaimed in the hopes of convincing their daughter.

Marie’s eyes only briefly flicked to her, before she simply stared at the ceiling, breathing heavily controlled and her mind undoubtedly racing.

Internally, Marie heard Nia’s and Alie’s whispers bleed into each other. “She won’t return for such weakness, sweet dumb girl.” Her body started shaking stronger, and she felt Risha’s muzzle press against her stomach firmer. Uncertainly, Marie reached out with shaking fingers and cautiously, just with her index finger traced along the wolf’s nose. Risha must have somehow sensed the fragility of the moment, keeping perfectly motionless with a stillness Lexa hadn’t observed in the animal before. The wolf’s light blue eyes bore into Marie’s with fiery loyalty.

Lexa sighed under her breaths. The girl’s reaction was evident without the need for any words. If she liked it or not, Lexa couldn’t just call Anya up and let the general sit here as well. Lexa didn’t trust her former mentor right now, not with the way the girl trembled beneath the fraying remainder of her mask of strength. Letting them be together could tip over the fragile balance of the child’s survival. It was clear, she wouldn’t be able to keep Marie separated from Anya for long, but Lexa would be there, watching every move of her general like a hawk.

“The bandages indeed need changing, and her body needs rest” Nyko interrupted as he didn’t like watching how the girl tried to process the events. That her mind needed rest direly, remained unspoken, but still hovered heavy in the stillness of the moment.

Getting Marie to actually offer her arms to Nyko to remove the bandages was painful to watch. Ontari hovered behind the unfolding scene uncertainly. The younger girl’s expression wavered between blanked over carefully and cracking into frantic desperation.

Lexa remained sitting next to her daughter on the bed, one arms soothingly slung around the girl’s midriff, propping the child’s body up efficiently against her own. Ontari couldn’t catch the words whispered directly into Marie’s ears. But she could see the effort trying to convince and calm Marie at the same time within the commander’s green eyes and in the way her hand clenched and unclenched over the girl’s hip.

Ontari didn’t understand exactly why Marie seemed so hesitant to have the bandages changed. Even from where she stood next to the bed now, she could see that red had seeped through clearly in spots. She worried that Marie was still losing blood so clearly. The wounds clearly needed tending to and would undoubtedly continue to need care for days or even weeks to come.

Marie’s lips were pressed into a thin line again when she finally uncrossed her arms from in front of her chest. Slowly, as if afraid someone may strike her, she uncurled one arm, inch by inch, trembling so strongly, even her jaw trembled against the pressure.

Ontari wished to sit down next to Marie’s other side, place a hand soothingly, possibly on one of her knees buried beneath the furs. But she wasn’t certain her closeness would even be perceived as soothing at all, so, she remained in the background. The commander was still whispering words to Marie and although she couldn’t catch the exact words, the woman’s tone was soft and gentle, as if soothing a spooked animal.

The nightblood girl held her breath, more out of instinct than anything else, when the healer finally untied the first bandage, keeping the child’s trembling limb firmly in his own grasp. No emotions were obvious on his own features, only brisk professionalism. The sight which was agonizingly slowly revealed as the bloody bandage was unwound, made Ontari’s stomach clench involuntarily. She had seen wounds of torture, battle and sometimes death, on others, on herself, even on Marie, but the sight ugly sutures on the child’s fair skin unsettled her more than Ontari would admit to out loud. Blood was carefully dapped away by the healer. Marie’s reactions of wincing, her grey eyes tightly pressed close, as if she couldn’t face the consequences of the events on her own body yet, were almost swallowed whole by the commander’s strong frame sheltering her. The edges of the sutures were clearly raised, red, raw, and unnatural. Where the old blood had been washed away, small drops of fresh bright red blood started to form almost immediately.

Ontari felt queasy for a reason she couldn’t even name herself. She knew she couldn’t help Marie. Her dark eyes glittered with unshed tears as her thoughts turned to their absent mentor briefly. If only Anya had listened to her weeks ago, she was convinced they wouldn’t be here then.

Nyko inspected the revealed wound carefully, pressing against the sutures carefully, judging with greatest precision if they would hold. His blue eyes flicked to his patient’s suddenly deathly pale features with an apologetic glint, when the girl inhaled sharply at the physical rush of pain.

Very carefully, he applied a reddish paste onto the deep wound. It was one of their own antiseptic blends. He trusted Skykru’s antibiotics now that he had seen what they could do, but adding their own remedies just to be on the safe side against an infection couldn’t harm.

Nyko regarded the child in front of him mutely. Her fragility visible in the very way she drew breath now. The commander may assume it a good sign that the child allowed her presence so close right now. But he knew this assumption to be treacherous. They may have managed to fight for the child’s body to persist through the night, but saving her will would proof to be so much more challenging.

A clean fresh bandage was wound around the frail arm again and Marie immediately snatched her arm back against her chest, when the healer’s hands retreated from the arm. Her grey eyes flew open again and she shook her head almost frantically when Nyko told her plainly that the other arm needed the same treatment now.

Lexa tightened her grip around Marie’s smaller body, shuffling to sit fully behind the child, enveloping her from behind. If her daughter could not bear this alone, then Lexa would bear it with her. Even if she to hold the child through every moment of pain personally. Internally, she wished for the ability to shelter the child from the consequences of what she had done to herself. If she had the power to transfer the child’s wound not herself, she would do so without a beat of hesitation. But she knew, it wasn’t possible. She could only be there with the child, offering her as much support and strength as was somehow possible. Even if it tore her apart internally to see the child’s suffering laid out in front of her so openly.

“It’s going to be fine, little star” she murmured to her daughter in what she aimed to be a calming tone. “It’ll be just like the other arm” she tried to reason with the shaking child.

“Please…” the girl breathed out faintly, voice cracking and desperate, “…don’t make me.”

The plea tore at Lexa’s heart and for a moment she felt inclined to grant it. Maybe the second bandage could be changed at a later time.

Nyko, who had leaned close enough to catch the whispered plea shook his head decisively. He knew this to only be the weak start of the child fighting back against their continued efforts to keep her alive. It would only get worse if they caved. He knew the treatment would be painful and most likely having to feel the effects of what she had almost done and the implication of it, would be even more painful than him tending to the wounds physically. He saw the conflict rage through the commander’s green eyes, the pain for her daughter within their depth. He saw her resolve falter, the way her body folded around Marie’s shaking form even more tightly.

“There is no way around it” he said firmly. He knew he could add reason that the child’s wounds needed tending to if she wanted to live. But as he was also very aware that this would be the main problem, he didn’t give voice to that reason. He didn’t want to give the child the opening to voice that she didn’t care for her own survival right now. Fearing what speaking those words out loud may do to the child’s already deeply wounded mind.

Ontari watched the proceedings with a frown. It only started to dawn on her now, that just because the younger girl’s body had made it through the night, didn’t mean that she actually wanted to be here. A small part of her mind had refused to accept that Marie’s internal war ran this deep. Even though she had physically held onto the girl’s profusely bleeding arms the night before, she had somehow thought that Marie would be relieved now, maybe not happy, but something different than this.

Her own breath staggered in her chest as she watched the feeble resistance the younger girl put up and the way the healer and commander tried to convince her to let it drop. Would it continue to be like this? She already hadn’t known how to help Marie during their journey, watching helplessly how her only friend seemed to vanish right in front of her eyes. She wanted to help her now, but she didn’t know if she could.

Ontari shook her head slightly, mirroring her internal racing thoughts as she pressed her own lips into a thin line and tears once more pricked at her eyes.

“I…” she started to stammer, voice breaking immediately. “I need a moment” she forced the words through her mouth weakly, turning on her heel and bolting from the scene without being dismissed, without looking back, without waiting for any reaction at all.

Chapter 64: Chapter 308

Chapter Text

Lexa couldn’t spare Ontari’s retreating form more than a fleeting glance. The small surge of annoyance she felt about the nightblood basically fleeing without waiting for an order had to be shut down quickly. She needed to concentrate on Marie, she could think about Ontari later.

The small body within her arms stiffened noticeably as the door clicked shut behind the nightblood girl, grey eyes shortly flicking over towards the now firmly shut door. Lexa had hoped the other girl’s departure might have been missed by her daughter, but of course, the child had noticed. Most likely she was taking it as another abandonment. Yet someone else stepping away, because of her perceived weakness.

Risha’s icy blue eyes had only shortly flicked to Ontari, and the wolf nudged its muzzle against one of Marie’s legs, as the child now sat beneath the furs. When Marie’s attention returned to Risha, the wolf pressed down against the outline of her legs, laying its head across the child’s legs only a second later.

“Your arm” Nyko called the girl’s attention back to him. His order was spoken softly, only with a hint of firmness underlying his tone, as if warning that this wouldn’t be forgotten.

The girl’s arm which still needed changing trembled more visibly pressed against her chest now, while her grey eyes looked up at Lexa in a renewed silent plea. The arm which already had a fresh bandage over the wound reached out towards Risha’s head lying heavily across her own legs. The child’s fingers immediately tangled in the fur, most likely stronger than she intended, the wolf only moved its head slightly, huffing under its breath, but otherwise staying still, as if it knew its own importance of grounding Marie in the presence.

The healer presented his own hand palm up to Marie, waiting with an intent stare for the child to cease her struggle. He couldn’t let her win this fight, no matter how pained the commander looked at not being able to shelter her daughter from it.

“Marie, it needs to be done, stalling won’t change a thing about it” Nyko spoke up after a few beads of silence had passed without any noticeable movement in the girl.

Her whole frame tensed, and her eyes took on that empty quality again, as she finally released her arm down from her chest and let it fall obediently into his waiting hands.

Lexa watched how the child submitted to the treatment with a slight frown. Little alarm bells rang in her mind. Her daughter’s body had stopped shaking and she sat slightly more upright against her own frame. She could feel the girl’s heart racing, as her back was pressed against her own front. The child endured the treatment silently this time, eyes not closed, but seemingly not seeing anything either.

The girl’s compliance felt unnatural, almost hollow to Lexa. As a commander she had given countless orders in her life, being obeyed was natural to her, but this way of obedience sat a shiver down her spine.

She watched how Nyko unwound the bandage around Marie’s suddenly still arm. The shaking was gone almost entirely.

Risha whined softly as the girl’s grip on the wolf’s fur also slipped. The child’s gaze remained focused on something, only she could see, most likely far beyond the confines of this room.

Lexa felt her stomach clench. She would have thought to feel a small surge of triumph as her daughter gave up her pointless fight against the healer. But fighting had meant that there was something left within her daughter, some resemblance of a will, she would have preferred the child screaming in fight, this hollowness felt like a far deeper loss than the child’s bandages not having been changed.

Nyko’s perception of the change in the girl wasn’t that much different. It alarmed him deeply, the child slipped away in front of their very eyes. Physically, she was still there, but her mind was retreating somewhere that wasn’t reachable.

Regardless, he still tried to anchor the girl’s mind in the presence. “This is the paste, I used before. It will sting again for a breath, but then it will sooth and it will keep any infection from settling.” His words were calm, informative about what he was doing. He hoped to see at least a flicker of recognition or interest within those grey eyes. The child had previously in TonDC indeed already showed interest in the healing arts. But now, there was nothing. No reaction at all that his words even registered within her mind.

He sighed under his breath. This would be the real battle. Not fighting for the child’s physical survival but keeping her mind from retreating constantly. If the child wouldn’t rekindle her will to live, he knew she would waste away as time passed, no matter his skills of healing.

“I will prepare a tea” he said now directly to the commander. It was clear Marie had stopped reacting to anything. The child hadn’t flinched a single time during the treatment, and he actively had to guide her arm down to rest lightly on her legs, as it stayed hovering in the air after he had finished applying a new bandage.

Indeed, the girl once more didn’t react. No question about what tea was being prepared. No plea for honey to be added to the undoubtedly bitter tasting brew.

Lexa slightly rubbed along her daughter’s back, hoping to spark back some life into her at the new sensation of touch and her lips thinned, when the girl continued to stare ahead, unblinking, and unseeing.

The commander helped holding the cup to the girl’s lips a few minutes later, carefully tilting the cup to get her to drink slow sips until the whole content had been drained. It took just a few more moments until the child’s breathing got deeper, her body sagging against her own and carefully she guided her daughter to lie back down. “Sleep, little star” she said softly, once the girl blinked once, the spell of whatever had overtaken her mind momentarily broken, and confusion clouded those grey eyes. “Just rest, I’ll be there” she promised, once more holding one of the child’s smaller hands between her own. Even though Nyko hadn’t explained, she could guess easily enough that the tea had been mixed to put the girl to sleep.

When Marie’s eyes finally drifted close, Lexa held her breath in anticipation. For a short irrational beat, she feared the girl would stop breathing now. Of course, she didn’t, her breathing only evened out slightly as her body was overtaken by sleep. Still, Lexa caught herself counting the girl’s breathing for long moments as silence settled around them once more. Only once she counted over 100, did she finally stop and forcefully will herself to relax at least slightly as well.

“The herbs should keep her asleep and calm for most of the day” Nyko finally broke the silence, when he saw the commander straighten herself and finally settling the child’s smaller hand down on the furs, letting go voluntarily for the first time since all this started.

Lexa nodded, outwardly she was calm. She understood why Nyko had given the child the tea. She could imagine how weakened her daughter’s body and mind were after the ordeal she had put onto herself. Still, she would have preferred the child awake, seeing that she was alive more easily. The rest which she had denied herself during the last night, started to pull at her own mind and she highly doubted Nyko would be feeling any better. The man had stayed with them through the night as well, without a single moment of rest, while Ontari had at least slept for a small stretch of time.

Lexa shortly reflected on the nightblood’s retreat earlier. She had briefly seen the toll the events had taken on the younger girl. For a moment, Lexa wondered how she would have fared in her stead, if their positions had been switched. At Ontari’s age Lexa had already sat on the throne for a few years. The coalition hadn’t been forged back then and Lexa only vaguely remembered the earlier times of her command. Had she ever cracked like this openly in front of others at this age? If she were to fall tomorrow, would Ontari be able to carry the weight of command without breaking under it?

Lexa sighed slightly under her breath and internally shook her head, she highly doubted Ontari would. If she thought about it more deeply, neither did she regard Aden as truly ready to take over command fully. The way the boy had crumbled under the guilt of his failure at something simple like guard duty, and thus, disappointing his commander, still showed how young he was as well. Both, Ontari and Aden, were still children, older than Marie of course, but neither fully grown yet.

In all honesty, Lexa knew she had grown and sobered in record speed after taking the mantle of the commander. Only in privacy and maybe with Anya present, or later Costia, had she allowed her doubts, fears, and weakness to bleed through slightly. She knew she would need to offer Ontari to speak with her alone. After the events of the last weeks, she didn’t trust Anya to find the right words to reassure the younger nightblood efficiently. Ontari was a very capable warrior, was showing talent as a strategic, and was slowly learning diplomacy, although she resisted that lesson the strongest still. Lexa still saw how vulnerable the Ice Nation nightblood was about her personal feelings. As Lexa was trying to instill compassion in her nightbloods, she knew that the coalition didn’t just require a military leader, a symbol, but also, what most people would deny, a human with feelings.

Lexa straightened slightly when she heard Nyko softly clear his throat. She looked over at the healer immediately. She wouldn’t apologize for loosing herself in her thoughts right now, the healer would surely understand.

“I can keep her body calm with herbs” Nyko broke the silence again, choosing to ignore the long moments he had waited for the commander to look back at him. “But calming her mind will be the real battle. It will be worse than anything you’ve been faced with” he said his words bluntly, willing the commander to understand the gravity of the situation fully.

Lexa inclined her head again in acceptance. She would weather this storm with Marie, no matter what it would cost her. For a moment, doubt flickered loudly through her mind. “Do you truly believe she doesn’t wish for survival?” her voice was controlled carefully, fraying faintly at the edges, where she tried to hold on to control with iron will alone, even against the exhaustion.

Nyko sighed audibly, considering the young leader silently as the seconds stretched. He didn’t believe in lying to a patient. “From the switch she showed between fighting and simply complying, her mind clearly slipping away, I highly doubt it. She does consider her own survival a failure right now. My warning that she cannot be alone even for a moment now stands more than ever.”

Lexa nodded again and one of her hands almost instinctively reached out back towards her daughter on the bed. She kept the physical contact soft and brief, afraid to possibly rouse the child from her much-needed slumber.

Internally, her optimism and doubts were warring with each other. Apprehension was slowly setting in, that no matter how much she loved Marie, or how much she would try to support her daughter, that it may not be enough to save her. Still, Lexa vowed to herself, that she would not allow the child to slip away from them completely. She couldn’t allow the girl to lose herself in silence. She couldn’t lose her daughter to the darkness poisoning the child’s mind. She would be there to hold on to her, even if she would be required continue to do so for the rest of her life.

“You must rest and take care of yourself as well. This isn’t going to be anything you can order away or win against with strategy or steel. It will be a battle of patience, constancy, and presence.” The healer’s words were serious, and his grim expression reflected that.

Lexa’s lips thinned the slightest bit as Nyko’s words sounded almost like an order, but she recognized the logic in them. She had sensed already that saving Marie wouldn’t be a quick battle, it would resemble a siege more than anything else. The man was correct, her daughter needed her to continue being strong.

She nodded. “I will have Gustus take watch next” Lexa simply answered. She couldn’t deny the tiredness starting to eat at her mind as well.

Nyko inclined his head sharply. He bent over Marie one last time, feeling the child’s pulse carefully. It was racing far quicker beneath the pale skin, than he would have liked. The child’s body would need time to counter the blood loss, even though Skykru’s blood bags had taken the worst edge already. The healer packed up his things and was dismissed from the commander’s quarters.

Only once Gustus had entered and taken a chair silently to stand beside the bed, did Lexa slip into the bathroom. The exhaustion of the previous day and night had taken a physical toll on her. Her shoulders appeared slightly bend, while her face was lined with exhaustion and dark circles had visibly formed beneath her eyes, when Lexa regarded her own reflection in the mirror. She quickly scrubbed the last remainders of Marie’s dried red blood from beneath her nails, feeling her own shoulders starting to shake. Internally, she was torn between the sudden wish to overthrow the water bowl and probably smash everything in the bathroom which could physically be thrown, and the deep need to simply weep. She knew, neither reaction would unfortunately be able to change anything for her daughter. Still, she saw her own eyes well up in her reflection and felt a fresh wave of tears prick at her vision, as her internal despair coursed through her mind. She knew, Marie needed her strong, but right now, she didn’t feel strong at all. She felt like a mother who had deeply failed at protecting her child from harm. Her fingers curled forcefully around the edge of the table as she tried in vain to contain her own sobs. She was fairly certain Gustus would be able to hear her struggle from the vast room, but she doubted the man would come over to investigate.

Lexa allowed herself a few moments of unraveling, while she was alone in the bathroom. Only alone could she allow herself this moment of weakness now. She knew she couldn’t let Marie see how much she had hurt her; the child would only absorb this as yet another reason for not being enough.

When Lexa stepped out of the bathroom long moments later, her eyes were clearer again, although still visibly red-rimmed.

Gustus surprised her, by standing up from his silent guarding of Marie’s sleeping form. The burly man intercepted the commander on the way to the bed. Lexa looked smaller only dressed in her nightshirt and barefoot. Without saying anything, he reached out and squeezed her shoulder mutely. A clear sign of support and Lexa briefly let her lips ghost into the semblance of a smile, before Gustus let his hand fall back and returned to the chair.

Risha’s head slowly raised from the bed when Lexa stepped around and came to lie down beside Marie’s other side. The commander let one of her hands briefly ran along the wolf’s soft muzzle and the animal placed its head back across Marie’s lower abdomen.

Lexa carefully listened to Marie’s deep breathing, while one of her hands carefully took hold of the child’s smaller one lying beside her body on the furs. The girl’s hand felt warmer against her touch once more and Lexa felt herself drift of, while she still counted the girl’s even breaths.

~ ~ ~

Ontari basically stumbled out of the commander’s quarters. She knew she should have waited for an order or at least an official dismissal. But she couldn’t have waited longer. Her vision blurred with unshed tears burning in her eyes and her stomach still felt twisted uncomfortably. Breathing felt more strenuous than it should and the gratitude of everything which had happened seemed to press in on her all at once.

She fled to the elevator without looking back, although she could feel the guards’ eyes practically burning on her back with their intensity.

Ontari waited impatiently for the elevator to carry her down. She didn’t want to go to the other novitiates, although first light had come out only shortly ago and she could guess they would be at training or maybe even at the first lesson. Was she expected to join them now?

She didn’t care at the moment. If she went to them right now, Ontari wasn’t sure if she would manage to keep her composure. No, she needed to be alone. Although she had gotten a little sleep during the night, she still felt exhausted and her back ached from having slept slumped over uncomfortably.

Although her fingers had been scrubbed clean, she still felt Marie’s blood clinging to it stickily. She couldn’t stop her mind from wandering. If she hadn’t gone up behind Marie, intent to tell the commander of what she had seen during the last weeks, the younger girl may have been too far gone for any medical help.

Her breathing was uneven and shuddering once the elevator finally came to a stop on the floor, where her own rooms were. Ontari went there directly, not paying any mind to possible guards stationed around the corridor. She had nowhere else to go. Marie was the only true friend she had, and she refused to consider looking for the general. The austere woman was the last one she wanted to speak to now. Ontari wasn’t sure if she wouldn’t regret what she may say in her current state of mind later on.

She shut the door firmly behind herself, even locking it, something she rarely did, as the general and commander didn’t approve of that.

Ontari felt her legs finally giving out on her and she slid down the inside of the door, coming to sit on the floor, as her shoulders started shaking and she wrapped her arms around her knees, drawing them closer to her chest.

She didn’t fight it when tears started to run wetly down her cheeks. She couldn’t remember the last time she had cried like this, bitterly and with deep loud sobs wracking her body.

Even though the commander had placed blame with her for Marie’s current condition, Ontari did so herself. She wished with all her might, to be able to go back in time, possibly to the first few days of travel, being able to drag Marie away from the traveling group and back to the capitol and to the commander. If only she had actually fought against Anya’s strict opinion that Marie needed this “toughing up”.

She couldn’t imagine a world any longer with Marie in it and Ontari could only pray that the younger girl wouldn’t give up on life. How would she be able to help her? Would the commander even want her to help with the younger girl? Would she even be allowed to sit with her again?

She desperately hoped that there would be something which could manage to save Marie. Because she knew, if the younger girl slipped away, a part of herself would die with her. The knowledge sat heavily in Ontari’s mind. She had never before felt so connected to anyone and she didn’t know if it was a feeling, she should nurture, or something she should fear. She knew there was power in compassion and love, but it also made her so much more vulnerable. For the first time in years, Ontari found herself internally praying, not for a victory or for power she had been brought up to crave, but for the single fragile life of a girl who had fallen from the stars.

Chapter 65: Chapter 309

Chapter Text

Ontari remained sitting on that floor far longer than she had intended, with her back pressed against the door, needing the sturdy wood to keep her upright for now. Her sobs had quieted down eventually, leaving her chest aching and her throat uncomfortably raw. The room felt stifling now, the confinements of the walls too small for the storm inside.

Her hands still itched with the memory of Marie’s blood, though they were visibly clean. She stared at them until her vision blurred in front of her dark eyes again, willing the ghost of the crimson stains to vanish. They refused and clung to her in ways no scrubbing would ever be able to erase.

She had been raised to see tears as weakness, as something which had been beaten out of her by the royal guard in Azgeda long years ago. Yet, here she was, shaking and feeling broken for a girl she wasn’t even supposed to care about like this. In Azgeda she had been taught no love, she had only been taught to rule, to crave power, to fight. What use was compassion if it left her feeling powerless like she did now? And yet, power had never steadied Marie’s hands, nor had it ever eased the haunted look in those grey eyes.

For the first time in her life, Ontari questioned not just herself, but everything she had been molded into. Since coming to the capitol and running into Marie, what now felt like a whole lifetime ago, everything had been flipped for her. She had been convinced back then, that she deserved to rule. It had been everything which had ever been drilled into her, her single purpose in life had been to become commander. And yet, she knew now, that she had been ill prepared for the duty power actually was. From the very first moment of running into Marie and abducting the unknown child back then, the blonde girl had behaved in the opposite she would have expected. At first, nothing had made sense about the younger girl. Ontari could have never predicted how everything in her life had changed and now that she looked back on it, all seemed to go back down to Marie. She knew for a fact, that she hadn’t been deserving of the kindness the younger girl had extended towards her at the beginning in Polis. Neither did she think that she had ever been a worthy friend for Marie.

She buried her face against her knees and breathed out harshly. If Lexa ordered her away from Marie after this, she didn’t know what she would do. The thought terrified her more than facing Nia after she had failed in a task, or having been sent onto a battlefield, ever had.

Slowly, she forced herself to lift her head from her knees. The room swam in pale dawn light filtering through the window. Her reflection in the small piece of polished metal above the basin startled her, when she had gotten back to her feet. Her dark eyes were swollen and reddened; her face blotched with tear tracks. She barely recognized herself in the reflection. Maybe this indeed was weakness. But maybe, it was something else entirely. And even the fleeting thought that this was a weakness she couldn’t allow herself, made her stomach twist uneasily, no, she realized internally, she couldn’t let go of Marie and her feelings for the younger girl.

Her words cracked the silence as she whispered. “Please, don’t leave me, Marie.” The words weren’t a command, weren’t even a demand, neither were they meant for the blonde girl to ever hear. Instead, they were a confession, torn out from the part of Ontari that still felt small and scared beneath all the training and all the armour.

And yet, beneath that fear something else flickered as well. If Lexa, or even the healer, doubted that Marie wanted to live, Ontari would not. She refused to accept this. Someone had to believe fiercely enough that Marie would recover, and Ontari realized with a jolt that maybe she had to be that someone for Marie.

She wiped at her face roughly with the back of her hand and turned from the wash basin. Her knees trembled, but she remained standing. She didn’t know what she would say when she faced the commander again, or if she would even be allowed near Marie after she had fled the commander’s quarters like she had. But one thing she was certain of, whatever happened next, she would not abandon Marie, and she would fight tool and nail to be with her. She had made her choice, she would not walk away again, not from Marie, not ever.

~ ~ ~

Anya felt the door fall shut behind herself as if it had been an officially issued banishment. Her stomach clenched unfortunately. Unwilling to remain in the hall motionless, she let her steps carry herself forward.

The general briefly stopped in the room where they had lived for a while. Her hands shook when she let her eyes roam over the scene. From the child’s bloody handprints on the open door, to the bloodied dagger and pendant still lying on the table. Anya shortly leaned over the book and felt the child’s scribbled world as if a blade had been struck between her ribs.

I am sorry I am not enough. I love you.

Anya didn’t know who the child had addressed the words to. They could have been meant solely for Lexa’s eyes to read, but still, Anya felt them as if they had been for herself.

The girl must have sat at the table while she cut into her own arms, sliding on the ground, leaving clear tracks of blood until she had come to sit in front of the wall.

The numerous bandages revealed beneath the child’s skin in the commander’s quarters were screams within her mind. Anya had stopped insisting to watch the child change and inspect her wounds a while into their journey back from the Rockline Clan. To her, Marie had appeared changed of course, and the child had clearly started resenting the order to undress and let her inspect the wounds, simply saying everything was from training, so, Anya had dropped the matter. She had seen the child unraveling at the edges, but she had been convinced there wasn’t more to it. What else could she have believed?

Had she pushed the child too hard, without even intending to?

Anya slightly shook her head. She hadn’t forced anything on the child which her own mentor hadn’t put her through in her youth. She had been several years younger even than Marie had been now. How had she been supposed to know beforehand that this would destroy something in their daughter?

Had it destroyed something within herself? Something she refused to acknowledge even?

Anya dragged her hands down her face and forced herself upright, but the sight of the table kept pulling her eyes back. Her throat tightened until she could barely breathe. She had drilled discipline into herself since childhood, but now, in the silent room, where her daughter’s blood dried, none of it mattered. Not her titles, nor her strength, or her years of command. She had failed Marie, and she had failed Lexa.

She had been far softer with Marie before, especially when the child needed comfort, had needed to sleep beside them when nightmares plagued her dreams. But she had deprived the child of that softness in the hopes of forcing her to toughen up. The news that the flame had fallen silent, together with the impending unrest in the coalition, had driven fear into her mind, they had needed Marie to stand strong, and possibly even to be able to survive alone if things turned for the worst and Lexa would be deemed unfit to rule. She had rationalized the change she had forced on the girl with her own fear of being unable to protect their daughter forever.

She turned on her heels and stalked out of the room when her thoughts threatened to spiral even further. There was nothing she could do, to change what had already transpired, no matter how strongly she may wish for it. She couldn’t wrap her mind around the fact of how badly she had misjudged the changes. Marie had stopped seeking comfort from her, the child had either stopped having nightmares altogether, or, what she suspected now, the child had forcefully hidden them from her. Anya’s jaw clenched at the realization that she had misread basically every sign of progress, everything she had started to take pride of in their daughter’s development hadn’t been true progress, but only the child forcing an act, because she thought it to be expected of her.

Had it ever been only an act to her? Anya couldn’t remember. Had she ever trembled trying to appear braver and stronger than she had, unwilling for her mentor to see that she wasn’t just that strong yet?

Once the elevator had carried her to the lowest level of the tower, Anya stepped out into the streets. Night had started to fall around Polis, and the streets were mostly deserted. The general had no aim on where to go, but she needed to move. Even while walking, her thoughts still circled internally. If she remained standing, they threatened to overwhelm her.

It was too late for find a sparring partner to seek out the training areal in the city. Usually, movements and especially practice kept Anya’s thoughts at bay, calmed her, but now even the simple movements of walking across the city did nothing to silence her thoughts. She couldn’t change the picture of Marie’s slumped over form, looking so deathly pale, and more gone already than still there, from her mind.

Anya ran into one of the warriors of her own unit. Tyson seemed visibly upset as he stepped closer to the general.

“Did the commander’s second catch the same disease?” the warrior asked before Anya could have even formally greeted him.

She furrowed her brow in slight confusion, not knowing what the man might be alluding to.

“The twins caught something from the Rockline Clan, the healers said its highly contagious for those who never had contact to it. I was already exposed as a child, not that I can remember. But with her being from the stars, she wouldn’t have come into contact with it before, right?” he talked quickly.

Anya shook her head slightly, thought spinning quickly. So far, no one knew what had transpired within the tower during the last evening. She could guess what disease Tyson meant, if she thought about it, she couldn’t remember Lexa ever having been infected either. “No, she didn’t have prior contact to it, neither did the commander.”

The man’s frown deepened. “Oh, that’s not good. We should’ve waited to return to the capitol…” his words trailed off, worry clear on his features.

“The healers are already there” Anya stated vaguely.

“You already had it?” Tyson asked cautiously and the general immediately inclined her head briskly.

Internally, Anya direly hoped that Lexa wouldn’t mind her covering for their daughter’s and most likely her own absence with an assumed sickness.

Tyson seemed reassured by her brisk nod, although his eyes still flickered with unease. “Then it must be that” he muttered more to himself than to her.

“Keep this to yourself for now” she ordered curtly. “The healers will say when it’s safe.”

Tyson thumped a fist to his chest and moved on. Anya watched him leave, her stomach twisting with unease. She had lied with ease, the kind of lie she was used to spread as a general or on the commander’s direct order to keep order intact. But this one tasted like ash in her mouth, it shouldn’t even have been necessary.

If word spread quickly, the unease in the clans that the commander may be sick as well, would spread, together with their increasing whispers to see the commander. It would give them a few days, nothing more. And she direly hoped a few days would be enough for Marie. The girl could be kept out of sight for longer, arguing easily that the sickness had hit her harder. The commander couldn’t afford to show weakness though. Anya refused to think what might happen if Marie didn’t wake again. Although the child had appeared alarmingly pale, and she had seen just how much of the girl’s blood had been on the floor within their former rooms. They would need to stick to that cover, if word ever spread that Marie wasn’t sick with a contagious disease, but that the commander’s child had nearly bled herself out under their watch, no lie would shield them then.

Marie’s perceived weakness would fall back on her, and worse yet on Lexa. The commander’s enemies, and although they kept themselves hidden right now, would seize whatever sign of weakness they could find.

“General” a low voice addressed her suddenly, interrupting Anya’s racing thoughts momentarily. She stood opposite of Rana, the young flamekeeper looked up at her with a neutral expression. For a fleeting moment, Anya felt as if the whole world had stopped spinning. Was the flamekeeper there to tell her that Marie had indeed perished despite the healers’ efforts to save her?

“Titus awaits your presence in the throne room” the younger woman proclaimed softly. When she wasn’t on duty with the younger nightbloods, it happened frequently enough that Titus sent her on errands, that having been sent out to look for the general wasn’t anything alarming.

Anya blinked at the younger woman for a moment. Her mind was still caught between the lingering image of Marie’s pale face and the lie she had just set loose in the streets.

“Titus?” she repeated the man’s name slowly and it tasted heavier than it should.

Rana inclined her head in a nod. “He asked for you directly and to meet him in the throne room.”

The throne room. The part of her words echoed through her mind for a beat. Not the flamekeeper’s private study, not some hidden chamber of the temple, but the actual throne room. Anya’s chest tightened at the implication. Titus didn’t summon general to the throne room unless it was about politics, or punishments.

Somehow, she doubted that Lexa would let her know of the news of their daughter’s passing through the flamekeeper. No, she shook her head at herself, the commander would want her to see what she had caused.

Only once had the flamekeeper personally ordered her to meet him specifically in the throne room. Of course, it had happened before that she had met the man there, but usually it had been at Lexa’s order then.

The only time it had already happened in the past, had been a few days after Costia’s head had been delivered to Lexa’s bed. Anya had personally been in the commander’s quarters for the first few nights, holding the young leader who was on the verge of breaking under her grief and responsibility alike. She knew Titus had tried to warn and even openly influence Lexa constantly since her ascension, and even before that, that personal ties were a weakness a commander couldn’t afford. Finally, the commander had headed her teacher’s words, and it had been her teacher who had proclaimed in the throne room that Anya was efficiently dismissed from Polis, ordered back to TonDC and stay there if not summoned directly to the capitol. The dismissal had felt more like a banishment and Anya had taken it with a stony expression.

Her heart grew heavy with the realization that such a scene could very well be on the verge of repeating itself. As the commander Lexa still held the power to officially banish her from Polis and there would be nothing Anya would be able to do about it. If she refused such a direct order, she knew it would be seen as betrayal to the commander, an open betrayal which would most likely result in her own execution.

Her jaw tensed, but she gave no outward sign of hesitation or how the summons was affecting her internally to Rana. “Very well” she forced her words to remain steady and her expression to stay blank. She wouldn’t let show just how much she was internally affected in front of Titus either, she refused to give the bald man this kind of triumph.

Rana’s dark eyes still lingered on her face for a fraction too long, as if she could somehow sense the storm raging within her mind. Then the young flamekeeper bowed her head and turned away, leaving Anya to stand alone with the cold weight of inevitability pressing down on her.

Anya doubted that word of her lie had already reached Titus’s ears, that would have been too fast, although she could guess that her warriors wouldn’t hesitate to speak about this sickness.

She rolled her shoulders back, standing straighter physically, while she steeled herself mentally. Whatever Titus wanted, and a small part of her feared it to be another dismissal from Polis, she still could not allow herself to falter in front of him. Not for Marie’s sake and definitely not for Lexa’s.

She turned back towards the tower and each step she took closer to it, felt like marching towards an awaiting battlefield.

Once Anya finally strode through the door to the throne room, she was almost surprised at finding it deserted, besides Titus who was bent over a few scrolls sitting on one of the tables. The few steps she needed to stand in front of him, granted her enough time to inspect how the bald man carried himself.

His jaw was set with too much force for him to be in a good mood. His dark eyes angry when he heard her entrance and looked up at her. If Lexa was sending her away, the flamekeeper wouldn’t look so annoyed, he’d rejoice in it, rubbing it in every way possible that he had been in the right all along.

Anya’s brows furrowed slightly, and her breath staggered. Had Marie died after all? But why should Titus appear annoyed then? The only use the man saw on their daughter was her healing ability, nothing else. She didn’t want to question him on the reasons as to why she had been summoned, so, she simply waited.

“The commander ordered…” he started, letting his words hang and suspend in the silence for a beat.

Anya’s furrow deepened. His annoyance still didn’t make sense if the commander had banished her again. She had to stop herself from impatiently tapping her foot, but her expression darkened ever so slightly.

“… that we hold the upcoming meetings together during her…” the flamekeeper said the words as if he had just been forced to eat something vile “…absence,” Titus spat the word like it was poison.

For a heartbeat, Anya couldn’t breathe. The single syllable spun in her mind, heavy and cruel. Absence. Was this how Lexa meant for her to learn of Marie’s death—that the commander herself had locked herself away in mourning? Or worse—that Lexa herself had fallen ill, and Titus was circling like a vulture?

Her jaw clenched, nails digging sharply into her palms where her fists had balled. She refused to give him the satisfaction of seeing her flinch.

Then the rest of his words registered. We hold the upcoming meetings together.

The air left her chest in a slow, careful exhale. Not banishment. Not dismissal. Not death. Lexa still trusted her enough to guard the coalition in her stead. The relief was sharp and almost dizzying, though she kept her face carefully schooled, offering only a brisk incline of her head.

She listened with a frown how Titus told her that Skykru had delivered tech for Marie to help her. From what he said, she could gather that he meant blood transfusions. It was clear he expected some kind of outburst from her. But he wouldn’t find that reaction with her. After the guards from Skykru had shot her and Abby had later operated on her, she knew that they had given her some of Marie’s blood to stabilize her. It had saved her own life, why shouldn’t it be used to save their daughter now? Lexa’s logic, which the flamekeeper recited clearly reluctantly, was sound and Anya would be her strongest supporter on it.

Chapter 66: Chapter 310

Chapter Text

Lexa woke with a jolt a few hours later, her heart hammered as though she had been wrenched right from a nightmare. For one terrible moment her mind remained blank, and then the memories of the previous evening crashing down with a blinding ferocity. Marie’s pale bloodless face, her strongly bleeding arms, the long wait. With frantic urgency she reached her fingers out almost in blind desperation to feel for Marie on the bed next to her.

Her breath left her in a shudder when she finally had reached the girl’s small hand. There was no fever of infection, neither was there chill of death, but only the faint and fragile warmth of life still continuing. She let her palm rest there a moment longer, pressing her thumb lightly against the delicate curve of her daughter’s knuckles, as if to reassure herself that the girl hadn’t slipped away while she slept.

Marie’s features still looked slack with sleep, although the hint of a frown had settled between her brows and her hands twitched as if she was caught in the shadows of a building nightmare.

Lexa sat up next to her body in the bed, stretching her shoulders cautiously. Sleep had obviously indeed been needed, and her eyes weren’t burning with exhaustion anymore when she watched cautiously how the girl’s chest rose and fell softly. Only when she had counted three steady breaths, did she finally look across the bed.

“She hasn’t woken” Gustus said in a careful tone before the commander could even ask. The burly man still sat on the chair by the bed, his broad frame still, arms braced on his knees. His expression attentive as he watched over the girl’s rest. He looked weirdly misplaced sitting as a silent sentinel beside the girl’s sickbed.  

Lexa nodded slightly, pushing down the remainder of her irrational fear that Marie’s condition may have worsened while she slept. She knew, Gustus would have woken her the very moment something changed.

Risha looked up at her from the girl’s other side, where the wolf had laid down, complete length of its body pressed against Marie’s sleeping form.

“Any word from the meeting?” Lexa asked at last, voice still roughened from sleep, as finally pushed herself fully up from the mattress. Internally, she dreaded the answer. She feared if the meeting hadn’t gone as planned, she would be called from Marie’s sickbed.

Gustus shook his head, the movement slow and deliberate. “It should be over already. But neither Titus, nor Anya have barged up here.” His lips pressed into the faintest ghost of a smirk. “So, it couldn’t have been a catastrophe.”

His reassurance eased a fraction of the tightness building in her chest, unfortunately it couldn’t quell her doubts. If there had been no catastrophe yet, from her experience that usually meant it was still waiting for her.

“Ontari was here a little while ago though” her trusted guard informed her almost casually.

Lexa frowned slightly and she let her gaze drift through her quarters quickly, as if she expected Ontari to be hiding somewhere. The nightblood girl was nowhere to be seen, of course she wasn’t.

“We didn’t grant her entrance. Loras told her you weren’t to be disturbed right now.” Gustus explained carefully.

Lexa’s frown only deepened. She had given no such order, before she finally had agreed to rest. It was true, she had wanted quiet for Marie, true that she herself had also direly needed a few hours of undisturbed rest. Ontari had fled hours ago, clearly on the verge of breaking.

For a moment, she pictured the Ice Nation nightblood outside her door, asking to be allowed inside, most likely horribly repentant. Still, her shoulders would have been set with pride, only the rawness still clinging to her face when she had fled still there as a shadow. Ontari was still a child as well, although she had also been a warrior trained since birth not to retreat. She had retreated anyway when she couldn’t take it any longer, only to come back hours later and to be turned away.

Lexa pressed her lips together as unease settled in her chest. To Marie, if the child woke now, Ontari’s absence would look like yet another abandonment. And to Ontari, Lexa feared, the nightblood would most likely have taken this as punishment.

“I have rested enough” Lexa proclaimed and quickly went about changing her clothes from the comfortable nightgown to a dark pair of trousers and a soft shirt. “Have Ontari summoned when you go to get rest” she ordered briskly.

Gustus inclined his head in mute agreement and immediately stood from the chair. “I’ll have food sent up as well.” Risha, who had not left the commander’s quarters since the previous day also stood up, stretched its huge body, and followed the guard when he exited the room.

Marie’s fingers twitched more noticeably once the furs around her cooled, now that Risha had left. Her lips parted in a faint soundless protest, and the muscles of her jaw clenched as though she was forcing herself not to whimper out loud.

Lexa immediately sat down next to the child again, leaning closer, as one of her hands found Marie’s again, trying to sooth her with the touch. “Easy, little star, you aren’t alone” she whispered the reassurance, although she wasn’t sure if Marie even was conscious enough to hear her words. Perhaps, the child was, and she felt Marie’s small hand tighten faintly, her fragile grip answering Lexa’s touch.

Lexa exhaled quietly, lowering her head to rest against the child’s temple for a heartbeat. Internally, she vowed to her daughter, that she wouldn’t let her wake alone to emptiness and darkness again.

She still wondered how Ontari had fared earlier, she highly doubted the nightblood girl would have sought out anyone’s company, so, she would’ve dealt with her internal storm alone. She hoped Ontari would return before Marie woke, the child wouldn’t take her absence well.

And then her mind turned back to the coalition, no matter how strongly she tried to stay solely focused on Marie. She had left Titus and Anya to steer the ambassadors. Had the clans believed their tale that the commander was seizing Skykru’s alien knowledge in order to better all of their lives? Or had the whispers of her own weakness already begun? Worse yet, were they whispering about her child?

Nyko knocked on her door just a few moments later, breaking her internal thoughts, while Lexa remained sitting on the bed next to her sleeping daughter, holding onto one of her frail hands. A handmaid followed on the man’s heal, carrying a tray laden with food. Lexa immediately smelt the strong scent of a bone broth, most likely provided for when Marie woke up.

The healer bent over Marie and felt her pulse, nodding with the hint of a frown. The pulse was still quicker than he would have liked. He inspected the bandages next, carefully turning the child’s arms. Marie whimpered slightly when the man turned her arms, although she didn’t wake, it was clear she was still feeling what was happening. Thankfully, the bandages hadn’t bled through yet.

“They’ve held; we will have to change them later” the healer proclaimed with a slight sigh. “She needs to eat once she wakes, the herbs will continue to hold for a while. She needs to rebuild her strength, that will not return on air alone. Her body is recovering, slowly, but the mind…the mind will resist longer than the flesh.”

Lexa’s lips thinned, while her jaw clenched. She could already guess convincing the child to eat would be a struggle. She could almost hear her protests, see the stubborn pout. Marie tended to be dramatic when she was sick and feverish, refusing needed medicine unless bribed with honey, groaning over broths as though they were some kind of punishment. A ghost of such a memory flickered against the frailness of the moment now, making her chest ache. How much she would have wished for those easier days now.

“She will eat” Lexa said at last, voice quieter than her usual command, but still carrying a hint of steel. Yet even she doubted her own words, convincing Marie might require something stronger than orders. It might require love to coax her where authority would fail.

Her thumb brushed lightly over her daughter’s knuckles, and she lowered her head. “You will eat, my little star”, she whispered, as though promising it to both of them. Neither would she allow the child to slip away. She would fight her mind every step if she had to, tether her to life, although Lexa didn’t know yet how to accomplish that.

A soft creak of the door made her lift her head sharply. Ontari stood framed by the torchlight in the hall, her shoulders stiff with tension, her chin held high in the practiced pride of Azgeda. But her dark eyes betrayed the image she was trying to portray, as she gazed towards the bed with her gaze raw and her eyes red-rimmed.

Her chest was heaving visibly, and strands of dark hair were plastered to her temples with sweat. Lexa realized with faint disbelieve that the nightblood girl obviously hadn’t taken the elevator but ran up the stairs in her haste. For a moment Lexa didn’t just see the warrior Nia had molded her to be, but also the fragile child hidden beneath.

For a heartbeat, neither of them moved. Then Nyko gathered his things and passed by then nightblood mutely, followed by the silent handmaid. Just before the door could close behind them, Risha slipped into the commander’s quarters. The wolf briefly brushed by the nightblood girl’s legs, muzzle shortly pressing against one her hands, which she held balled into tight fists by her sides.

Ontari startled visibly, breathing still heavy, and almost jumped back from the moist nose at her fingers. The girl blinked down at the wolf with an almost sheepish expression, shortly letting her fingertips graze over the soft muzzle.

Risha seemed satisfied enough with the short attention Ontari had bestowed on her. The wolf continued further into the room, jumping up onto the bed and settling itself across Marie’s legs.

The blonde girl’s lips parted with a slight sigh, her body twisting a little, as if searching for a more comfortable position before she settled again.

Lexa felt Marie’s hand within her grip go lax as if the wolf’s return had soothed something within the girl’s mind.

Ontari hovered still near the entrance of the room, unsurely she stepped forward. Her poise now a mixture of fraying pride and repentance. “Commander, I came to formally apol…” Her voice caught, her throat working as her fists clenched at her sides. When Lexa’s green eyes finally lifted from Marie, steady and intense, the nightblood’s words bled out into silence.

The commander said nothing at first. Instead, she let the weight of her silence press between them. She had seen Ontari falter before, but never like this, never with her expression stripped so bare. Ontari’s shoulders stiffened in the old habit of pride, learned under fists in Azgeda, but her eyes flicked down now, betraying the tremor she apparently tried very hard to smother.

Lexa’s own chest tightened at the sight. She knew, if Marie had woken already, she would have taken the older girl’s absence as another person she had disappointed and been abandoned by, so, she was internally grateful the nightblood had returned now.

She still didn’t understand the bond which had formed between the two unlikely girls. Ontari had left Polis to return to Nia, solely to see if Marie still lived. The Ice Nation nightblood had brought their daughter back to Polis, had protected her as much as possible, and their unexpected friendship had only grown after Marie had regained her memories.

Still, if Ontari could not bear this now, then better to let the bond between the girls snap here, than allow Marie to hope and only be abandoned again. Her daughter would not survive another loss, neither would she allow it to happen.

The silence stretched until a faint sound broke it, the flutter of Marie’s breath catching while her fingers started to twitch against Lexa’s palm before going still again. Both froze at the sight, their gaze snapping down to the fragile child between them.

Lexa’s voice was firm when it finally pierced through the heavy silence. “If you are to stand with her, Ontari, then you will not falter again. She cannot bear it. Do you understand that?”

Ontari stepped closer to the bed, moving closer to Marie, and her expression hardened with determination. She had vowed to herself already that she would fight tooth and nail to be allowed to remain close to Marie, she would not fail the younger girl, neither the commander’s expectations.

The nightblood girl drew in a breath, her chest was still heaving after the climb of the stairs. For a heartbeat her mouth opened and then closed again, as if the words themselves refused to come out past her lips. But when she finally spoke, her voice was roughened with emotion, unsteady, while her expression remained sharp with conviction.

“I will not leave her again, ever,” she said, eyes locked on Lexa’s probing gaze. “Not while she needs me. Not when she thinks she is alone. If she breaks, I will be there to hold her together. If she fights, I will stand through. I will be there, whatever that may take from me.”

Her fists unclenched slowly at her sides, and she looked down at Marie’s still form then, and for the first time since stepping into the commander’s quarters, the brittle mask of pride slipped from her features entirely. “She’s the only friend I’ve ever had…”, Ontari admitted in a whisper, trying to still hide the internal storm raging through her.

Lexa continued to study her for a long and silent moment, searching her expression and eyes for any lingering hints of hesitation. Still, she found none. She only saw the fire of a girl who had been molded into a weapon, who now chose herself, possibly for the first time in her life, on where to point the blade.

“See that you don’t forget these words” Lexa said at last, keeping her tone firm, but quieter than before, as though even her command was softened by the sleeping child between them.

Ontari nodded her head quickly and the way some of the tension had melted from her shoulders, made it clear that she had been afraid of the possibility that the commander could dismiss her from Marie’s side.

“You can come closer again” Lexa offered as the corners of her lips tugged into the ghost of a smile, when the nightblood girl still continued to hover in front of the bed uncertainly, straining her neck to see Marie more clearly.

Ontari ducked her head slightly and almost stumbled closer, coming to sit down on the opposite edge of the mattress cautiously. One of her hands twitched uncertainly for long moments, unsure about reaching out towards Marie.

Lexa didn’t think she needed to voice her permission, so, she let the nightblood girl come to the decision in her own time. Ontari had finally reached out and cautiously, as if she were trying to hold onto a single precious snowflake, took Marie’s other hand between her own.

Marie’s lips parted slightly at that moment, as if in reaction to the touch, but nothing more than a faint sigh left her lips. Risha’s ears flicked momentarily, but the wolf quieted down again as well, sensing its human wasn’t waking up yet.

Before Lexa could think of something to say, the radio she had left on a table crackled back to life. “Lexa, are you there?” Clarke’s voice was unmistakable.

Lexa’s head turned sharply at the interruption. For a breath, she didn’t move, her thumb continued to brush absent circles over Marie’s knuckles.

Clarke’s voice though buzzed again, more insistent this time, loud and sharp against the stillness of the room. “Lexa, please respond, if you’re there. We need to speak.”

Ontari stiffened visibly at Marie’s other side, looking over at the small device with her eyes narrowed suspiciously. Her grip on the child’s hand had tightened, as if she feared Wanheda personally may burst through the radio and drag Marie away. Her dark eyes shortly flicked to Lexa; a flash of distrust still glinted in her eyes before she visibly forced her expression to blankness once more.

Lexa let the silence stretch another heartbeat, internally torn. Answering now meant risking that whatever Clarke wanted was something, which would call her from Marie’s bed immediately. But even the simple act of lifting her hand from Marie’s felt like a small act of treachery. Her green eyes minutely dropped to her daughter’s pale features, then to the wolf laying across her legs, and finally over to Ontari. The Ice Nation girl looked like she might bolt if Lexa abandoned the bed for too long.

“Stay with her”, Lexa finally said, and her tone rang with command. She slid her fingers carefully from Marie’s grasp, letting Ontari’s hold remain the child’s only tether right now, and finally rose to her feet with deliberate calm. Each step toward the table felt like peeling herself away from the one thing which mattered right now.

Lexa stepped onto the balcony shortly with the radio in hand. When she pressed the button down to answer, her voice was cold, as the mask of the commander slid back into place even as her heart still beat for Marie.

“Clarke, I am here”, she said simply, waiting for the blonde healer to respond.

“The transfusions, did they help? Do you need more to be sent?”

Lexa’s brows furrowed slightly. She would have already reached out to Skykru again if Nyko’s assessment had deemed that necessary. “Her pulse is stronger again, she woke briefly.”

“Oh, that’s good. I am glad it helped” Clarke’s voice sounded colored with relief.

“Was that all you wanted to speak about?” Lexa questioned, not quite managing to keep a hint of annoyance from her tone.

The answer came quick and unexpected. “No, I wanted to check in with you.”

“I am not hurt”, Lexa immediately retorted with a frown.

“Hey, I may not stand next to you right now, but there’s no need to lie. This connection is safe, even Raven can’t listen right now. I made her program a special frequency just for that.”

“Clarke…” Lexa let her voice trail off, as she felt the weight of the situation start to press down on her.

“I know how much you love her. My mother cautioned me, that the ones supporting someone after a failed suicide attempt, will need support as well. It’s more draining than you think….”

Lexa did not let Clarke continue rambling, as she pressed down the button again. “I will manage”, she proclaimed firmly.

“Lexa, please, promise you take care of yourself as well” Clarke urged. “I could come back to Polis.”

“No”, Lexa denied the last part quickly, voice sharp and cutting. Marie had never found a deep connection to Clarke, and she needed all her focus for her daughter right now, she couldn’t allow herself to be distracted by the blonde healer. “I am going to take care of myself”, she added the reassurance when the silence settled, and she could almost picture Clarke sitting in front of the radio right now with a look of clear hurt in her blue eyes.

“You can talk to me daily, even just a moment, if it will help” Clarke’s offer sounded genuine.

Lexa hesitated for a moment. “I will consider it”, she finally settled on, in a softer tone. Her gaze turned back towards the door. “I need to return to her.”

Chapter 67: Chapter 311

Chapter Text

Lexa lingered on the balcony just for another heartbeat, feeling the wind ghost over her face almost soothingly.

The commander’s quarters were kept warmer than usual now. The fire stocked to blaze higher in the hearth, another brazier added just beside the bed, with the intent to preserve as much warmth for the fragile body resting on it as possible. The additional heat made her quarters feel unusually stifling.

Lexa’s feet were silent on the floor padded with an old rug when she stepped inside again. Still, Risha’s head immediately lifted from its perch over Marie’s legs. The wolf’s icy blue eyes found her approaching and laid back down again.

Ontari didn’t seem to have moved an inch though and Lexa briefly nodded to her in mute acknowledgement. The nightblood girl didn’t appear to be close to bolting, while she still clutched Marie’s smaller hand between her own, almost like holding onto an anchor. Lexa didn’t know who Ontari was trying to anchor, herself or the blonde child?

Even when Lexa sat down on the other side of the mattress, Ontari still held on, obviously unwilling now to severe the physical contact.

Risha shifted slightly and the wolf’s large head was now placed closer to Marie’s chest, as if intent to fight off invisible demons for her human. The wolf’s breathing was loud and deep, and Lexa could barely see the subtle raise and fall of Marie’s chest beneath it.

Ontari’s dark eyes stayed on the commander for a long while after the woman had returned. Her own breathing had turned back to normal. Outwardly, the Trikru woman appeared calm, as she picked up Marie’s other hand again, gaze fixed on her breathing. But something about her felt off to Ontari. She thought to spot a faint tremor in her fingers as they grasped Marie’s hand, looking so fragile and small between the commander’s hands. She had seen Wanheda and the commander together before, knew there had been something romantic between them, but with Wanheda leaving Polis, she had thought things over between them. If she looked at the commander now, she wasn’t so sure about it.

Ontari stopped thinking about it when Marie’s breathing audibly started to change. The younger girl’s fingers twitched in her grasp and her breathing started to sound labored.

“What is happening?” the nightblood girl said into the tense silence. She didn’t know if this could be Marie waking up, or possibly something else entirely.

Lexa green eyes were fixed on Marie’s pale features. The frown she had worn even as the herbs kept her under had only increased and her lips seemed to move faintly, as if the child was breathing words too low for them to hear.

Risha’s ears twitched and the wolf placed one of its paws on Marie’s chest as well, almost as if the animal was giving her a nudge to wake.

“The effect of the herbs should be wearing off soon” Lexa finally answered the nightblood’s question when Marie seemed to have stopped moving again. It remained to be seen how long waking up would take and more importantly, how Marie would be.

Ontari nodded slightly, shortly looking back at the commander. Her fingers indeed did tremble visibly. Although she had observed the commander’s softness with Marie before, somehow, this almost insignificant sign of her fingers trembling now, drove home to her, just how much Lexa was suffering as well.

Time seemed to stretch as they sat next to Marie, waiting for the wounded girl to wake again.

From time to time, her lips would part and she would mumble incoherently, her fingers twitching in their hold. Risha had crawled even higher up the girl’s body, muzzle now nestled against one of her collarbones.

When Marie’s eyes finally blinked open, and for Ontari it felt as if she had been sitting in silent vigilance for hours already with the commander, the younger girl was clearly confused.

“Anya…” was the first word clearly distinguishably tumbling from her lips, when her eyes were still closed.

Ontari’s dark eyes shortly switched from Marie’s troubled features to the commander. Lexa had leaned closer over the younger girl and the woman’s expression appeared almost pained. The general didn’t seem to have returned to the commander’s quarters yet. Either, she had not been welcomed, or she was still filling political duty in Lexa’s stead.

Marie’s lashes fluttered weakly, but she didn’t fully open her eyes again. Her lips trembled visibly as though just speaking the single word had already cost her strength.

Lexa’s fingers tightened around her daughter’s hand, her jaw tense, but her voice was soft with an almost pleading note, when she finally spoke. “Marie, I am here. You are not alone.”

The girl’s grey eyes finally blinked open fully, still clouded with confusion and her gaze unfocused. Her gaze remained on the ceiling for long moments, and slowly, the grey eyes started to look around the room. There was no spark of recognition at first, when her gaze finally met Lexa’s green eyes, only the deep confusion swimming in her grey eyes remained.

Without thinking further Ontari leaned closer to the younger girl as well. Her own grip was steady against Marie’s smaller fingers. “You are safe”, she murmured in a far softer tone than Lexa had ever heard her use. “You’re at home. With us.”

For a heartbeat, the words of reassurance seemed to sooth Marie, until her gaze flicked back and forth between them. Her body tensed noticeably and with a weak jerk she tried to pull her hands free, although she clearly was lacking the physical strength to succeed at the moment. The movement seemed more instinct than intent.

When Marie’s grey eyes minutely swept over the room, she whispered one word again “Anya”. An edge of desperation had creeped into her tone, clearly noting the woman’s physical absence and most likely taking it as proof of abandonment.

Lexa’s throat tightened, as she gently brushed a damp strand of blonde hair back from the girl’s forehead, trying to ignore the slight flinch her touch brought. “She’s not here right now”, Lexa admitted, internally debating if she should reason with their daughter that she had personally thrown Anya out for the moment. “But she will not leave you, neither will I”, she added the last part with intensity.

Marie’s grey eyes shimmered with tears, but she seemed to bite them back. Only her lips trembling betrayed her internal struggle for a moment. “She left… because of me.” The words were rasped out raw and each syllable felt like a knife being twisted in Lexa’s chest.

Ontari’s jaw clenched, while her entire body went taut at the statement. Before the commander could formulate an answer, she spoke up, fiercely, trying to hide the simmering anger at their mentor from her tone. “No, you didn’t make her leave, Marie. None of this is your fault. Do you hear me?”

Marie’s grey eyes flicked toward the older girl, gaze searching, and expression lost. And though she didn’t say anything, she also didn’t look away again.

Lexa exhaled slowly. She knew she would need to have Anya summoned soon. She would refuse to leave the general alone with Marie at the moment, but keeping Anya away would only continue to hurt their daughter. She leaned down and pressed a kiss against the girl’s temple, the skin damp against her touch. “We are both here and we will stay.”

Risha gave a soft low whine and pressed her muzzle firmer against the girl’s collarbone, as though adding physical weight to their promises.

Marie’s breath hitched faintly at the wolf’s touch, her lashes trembling as though she was caught between clinging to wakefulness and slipping back into the pull of exhaustion. Her lips parted once more, but this time no words emerged, only a faint rasp of air.

When Marie’s eyes started to drift shut again, her lashes lowering as though the pull of exhaustion was too much weight, Lexa leaned in closer. Her hand smoothed over the girl’s damp hair. “Don’t fall asleep right now, Marie, stay with me now,” she tried to coax in a gentler tone than the underlying command.

A faint groan rumbled from Marie’s throat and her lips pressed into a fine line. The girl clearly wanted the dark and the silence pulling at her consciousness. But Lexa couldn’t allow her to slip under right away.

“You’ve slept enough for the moment”, the commander continued in a firmer tone. “You need physical strength, so your body can heal. Just a little broth, and then you can continue to rest.”

At that, Marie turned her face slightly away from the side where Lexa sat next to her. Her jaw trembled with the effort of the little movement. “Don’t want…” she rasped, the words catching painfully in her dry throat.

Ontari shifted closer as well, leaning in, her expression sat with fierce determination. “Marie” she addressed the younger girl in a tone edged with urgency, “You have to listen to her. You can’t fight if you don’t eat.” The word “fight” slipped out without much thought, because for Ontari, survival had always been some kind of fight.

Lexa shot the nightblood girl a faint glance but didn’t contradict her with words. Instead, she gently guided Marie’s chin back with her fingertips, forcing the child’s grey eyes to meet hers once more. “Little star,” she whispered the name softly, “just this once. For me.”

The girl’s throat bobbled visibly, her resistance faltering at the unveiled plea in the commander’s tone. Risha nudged her collarbone again with a soft huff, as though the animal wanted to side with Lexa.

Slowly, almost as if it was physically painful, Marie’s lips parted the slightest fraction, resigning herself to the broth.

Lexa exhaled in quiet relief and quickly reached for the cup of broth Nyko had left for the girl. She held it steady, tilting it just enough for a small sip to touch the girl’s mouth.

Marie swallowed, face twisting at the taste, and shook her head weakly. “Enough…” her voice sounded the slightest bit less raspy.

Lexa’s grip tightened faintly on the cup. “One more” she pressed in a tone soft and brittle, as breaking glass.

Marie’s grey eyes shimmered with tears again, but she obeyed, drinking another reluctant swallow before turning her face back into the pillow.

“Good” Lexa murmured in acknowledgement against her temple as she leaned down and brushed her lips of the girl’s damp hair. “That’s enough for now.” Although she internally felt that it wasn’t. Two measly sips were surely not going to keep the child alive. “Rest, little star” she whispered, as though her own heart fought for words. Every time Marie’s eyes closed, terror gnawed its way up her spine that they may not open again.

Ontari hadn’t let go of Marie’s other hand. She sat hunched forward on her other side, her entire body taut with tension, while her dark eyes remained locked on the younger girl’s features. For a moment, her expression softened, her thumb brushing against Marie’s knuckles almost awkwardly in a clumsy gesture of comfort from a warrior who had never been taught gentleness.

Marie’s grey eyes cracked open at the movement, her lips visibly trembled again. This time her voice was barely audibly, less than a whisper. “Don’t … go.”

Lexa’s gaze flicked to Ontari over the girl’s small body, and in that brief shared silence an understanding passed between them. Whatever grievances lay between them, whatever lingering doubts Lexa still harbored about Ontari’s steadiness, Marie had chosen her, too.

The commander straightened slightly; her expression schooled into quiet authority but her voice still softer than most ever heard it. “We won’t.”

And Ontari, her usual pride stripped away, nodded quickly and bent even closer to Marie, her words only a whisper meant for the younger girl. “Not ever.”

Lexa regarded the nightblood girl in silence for long moments. The raw expression on her scarred face was rare, her dark eyes still fixed on Marie’s features. Nia must have drilled her mercilessly not to show feeling, but it wasn’t a lesson Ontari had ever fully mastered. This openness — this fragility worn so bare — was unusual. Ontari had admitted only hours ago that Marie was the first person she had ever called a friend, the first she had truly cared for. And in the fire that lingered in her eyes now, Lexa saw the truth of it. Ontari would stay beside Marie, whatever the cost.

Titus would not approve. Once the flamekeeper realized the depth of the bond between them, he would brand it weakness. Yet Lexa knew there was another kind of strength here — a kind Titus feared. Ontari’s loyalty would never belong to the Commander personally, nor to the Flame, but to Marie alone. That kind of loyalty could not be commanded, nor contained. It would endure where fear broke, and in that endurance lay both danger and power.

Lexa feared what would happen to Marie if Ontari ever wavered. But she had watched enough oaths splinter under promises of power, ambition, or terror to recognize this for what it was: not the loyalty of duty, but of friendship. Such loyalty might make Ontari reckless, even uncontrollable, but it also made her formidable.

Love had carried Lexa through more battles than fear ever had. Perhaps she could not yet trust Ontari completely. But she knew this much — the girl would bleed for Marie if it came to it. And perhaps that made Ontari as dangerous as she was necessary.

Ontari sat rigidly, aware of the commander’s gaze pressing into her like the weight of a blade at her throat. She didn’t flinch, didn’t drop her eyes, but she felt it all the same — Lexa watching, judging, as if to measure how long she could hold steady.

Her thumb brushed over Marie’s knuckles again, awkward but constant. She wasn’t used to touches meant for comfort, but the idea of letting go felt unbearable. As if her grip alone stood between Marie and the dark that still threatened to pull her under. And yet, the girl’s hand was so light in hers, so frail, Ontari’s chest clenched with the fear that she might be holding nothing more than a memory in the making.

Anger stirred hot in her stomach — at herself, at Nia, at the world that had left them both scarred. In Azgeda, there had been no place for fragility. Weakness had been met with cold contempt, beaten out of her until she had learned to smother every tremor, every tear. If she had shattered the way Marie had, Nia would have abandoned her in the snow without a backward glance. That was how she had been taught to rule, how she had been molded: break or be broken.

But as she looked at Marie — pale, trembling, clinging to life with what little strength she had left — Ontari knew she would defy every lesson Nia had ever beaten into her. Marie wasn’t steel to be reforged or discarded. She wasn’t a weapon. She was something Ontari had never been allowed to be: fragile, and still worth saving.

The realization carved something sharp into her chest, equal parts fury and desperation. Fury at the queen who had made her believe compassion was weakness. Desperation that now, even as she clung to Marie, it might not be enough.

Her jaw tightened until it ached, but still she held on. Let Lexa doubt her, let Titus sneer and call her weak — Ontari knew her vow. I will not leave her to the cold. I will not let her be broken like I was. She will not stand alone.

And yet, beneath the vow, fear still gnawed at her. What if she was too late? What if she could not stop Marie from slipping away, no matter how hard she fought?

Ontari kept her silence, back straight, dark eyes fixed on the fragile rise and fall of Marie’s chest. But Lexa had learned to read people in their silences, and the nightblood was not as composed as she wanted to appear. Her grip on Marie’s hand was too tight, her jaw set until it almost trembled.

Lexa remembered the girl who had first come to Polis, all sharp edges and unflinching pride. Ontari had been taught to fight, not to feel — and when feelings did surface, to bury them beneath arrogance or fury. Yet here she was, sitting motionless beside a child, letting herself be undone by the possibility of losing her.

The commander’s gaze lingered. She did not fool herself; Ontari was still raw, untested in more ways than one. Titus would call what Lexa saw weakness, and perhaps in another time, Lexa might have agreed. But she could not mistake what burned behind the girl’s dark eyes now. It was not ambition. It was loyalty. Real, unyielding, and frightening in its intensity.

Lexa inhaled slowly. Ontari had been in Polis for little more than a year, and yet in that short time, something had shifted. If the girl could learn to temper this new-found compassion without losing her strength, she could become something neither Nia nor Titus would ever understand — a leader others might follow not out of fear, but devotion.

Lexa’s gaze lingered on Ontari a moment longer, taking in the fire banked in her dark eyes. But her thoughts shifted, as they inevitably did, back to Anya.

Marie had asked for her the moment her lips could form words again. The absence was cutting into the girl like another wound, feeding that familiar conviction that she had been left behind. Lexa could not ignore that — not for long.

Yet the memory of Anya standing in their quarters, blood on the floor and guilt etched into her every line, weighed heavy on her. The general’s hardness had helped forge Lexa once, but that same hardness had pushed Marie to the brink. To summon her back too quickly might undo whatever fragile ground they were holding the girl on now.

Her jaw tightened. When she allowed Anya into this room again, it would be on her terms. And before she did, Anya would hear her warnings. Lexa would not tolerate a single harsh word, not the faintest echo of expectation or discipline pressed on Marie again. If the general could not hold her tongue, Lexa would have her removed no matter the fallout.

But could she keep Marie waiting much longer, when the child’s first waking thought had been of Anya? That was the knife’s edge Lexa walked now — between protecting her daughter from pain and protecting her from the agony of feeling abandoned by one more person she loved.

The silence in the room stretched long and heavy, broken only by the steady crackle of the hearth fire and the low rumble of Risha’s breathing. Lexa let her thumb stroke once more across the fragile line of Marie’s knuckles, trying to anchor herself in the rhythm of her daughter’s pulse.

Then, faint as a sigh, the girl stirred. Her lips moved soundlessly at first, breath catching, and then a single name slipped into the stillness like a blade cutting through cloth.

“Anya…”

Lexa froze. Her green eyes snapped to Marie’s face, but the child’s lashes remained shut, her brow faintly furrowed. It wasn’t waking — only dreaming. Yet the name, raw and whispered, lanced through Lexa’s chest all the same.

Was she searching for her in sleep? Reaching blindly for the general she had clung to since falling from the stars? Or worse — reliving something she had begged Anya for in the shadows, some plea the general had ignored?

Lexa’s throat tightened painfully. She could not know which it was, not now. And the not knowing ate at her more than any wound ever could.

She cast a brief glance at Ontari across the bed. The nightblood had gone rigid at the name, her dark eyes darting to Lexa with something unspoken — a question, or perhaps a warning. Lexa gave no answer. Her jaw only clenched, her gaze dropping back to her daughter’s pale, restless face.

If Anya’s absence continued to carve its way through Marie’s mind, it might undo everything Nyko’s herbs and their vigilance were holding together. Yet to summon her too soon risked breaking the girl in another way entirely.

Lexa brushed a trembling strand of hair back from Marie’s damp brow and bent close enough that her lips ghosted over her temple. “You are not alone, little star,” she whispered fiercely, as though the words themselves could shield the girl from the storm within her sleep.

But inside, doubt coiled tighter. How long before she would have no choice but to let Anya through that door?

Ontari’s spine locked tight when the name slipped past Marie’s lips. Anya.

The sound was faint, half-breathed in sleep, but it thudded against her chest like a blow.

Anger flared first — sharp and hot. It was easy, familiar. She could aim it at the general who had driven Marie so far into despair. At the mentor who had abandoned her in her weakest hour. Ontari could almost welcome that anger; it gave her something to hold onto.

But beneath it, something unfamiliar coiled tighter. Jealousy. She hated the word, hated even recognizing the feeling. She wasn’t used to sharing — not loyalty, not friendship, not the fragile thread of gentleness Marie had given her. She wasn’t used to wanting something so badly that the idea of it belonging to another made her chest ache.

Her dark eyes flicked to Lexa, searching the commander’s unreadable expression. Did Lexa hear only longing in that whispered name, or did she fear, as Ontari did, that Marie was pleading with the general in her dreams? Pleading for something Ontari could never give?

Her grip on Marie’s small hand tightened, almost too hard, before she forced herself to loosen it again. She ducked her head, jaw clenched. This isn’t about me, she reminded herself, but the words rang hollow. The raw ache of being second — of possibly being invisible — was not something she had ever been taught to survive.

Ontari glanced at Marie’s restless face again, her thumb brushing clumsily across the girl’s knuckles in a grounding stroke. “You’re not alone,” she whispered so softly that only the wolf’s ears twitched at the sound. But inside, her chest still burned — torn between the familiar fire of anger and the strange, unsettling weight of jealousy.

Chapter 68: Chapter 312

Chapter Text

Hours later Ontari watched in bewilderment how Nyko tried to treat Marie.

The younger girl had woken just a few minutes before the healer had been called into the commander’s quarters.

Marie’s grey eyes had opened, her breathing had become shallow, but she hadn’t reacted to anything. Not to Lexa calling out to her, no matter how loud or low the commander had addressed the child, no matter if her beloved nickname had been used or not. There had been absolutely no spark of any reaction in Marie. The girl just lay on the bed, eyes open, seemingly staring up at the ceiling, and just continued to breathe.

Lexa had sat down closely to Marie, while Ontari begrudgingly had let go of the younger girl’s hand and stood from the bed to make room for the healer.

It was clear the commander was fervently trying to sooth the girl with whispered reassurances, but Ontari wasn’t certain Marie was even upset. Instead, it seemed as if the girl’s body had remained while her will seemed gone.

When Nyko asked Marie to look at him, there was no reaction. When he asked for one of her arms to take off the bandages and inspect the sutures, Marie didn’t blink, she didn’t move, she didn’t react at all.

Ontari had almost expected the younger girl to snap out of her weird state once the healer had sat on the edge of the bed and reached out for one of her heavily bound arms. But it seemed as if Marie either didn’t care or simply didn’t feel it when the man started to carefully remove the bandage.

Ontari’s expression darkened as she watched the proceedings hovering over his shoulder. The bandage was visibly strained red, the bleeding hadn’t stopped fully yet.

“They are deep” Nyko said briefly to the commander, “The seepage should stop in the next three days.”

Ontari breathed out a little easier, if the healer wasn’t worried about the continued bleeding it was probably expected at this stage. She blinked though when the man started to carefully reapply some of his reddish paste and Marie just let him continue. Before the younger girl had whimpered in pain, trying to wrestle her arm free weakly, but now there was simply nothing, almost as if the healer was working on a life-sized doll instead of a living thing.

Nyko’s frown deepened as he pressed lightly along the edge of the wound, searching for signs of infection. There should have been a flinch, a sharp intake of breath, even the smallest tremor of resistance. Instead, Marie’s arm lay slack in his hands, her grey eyes unblinking, unfocused on anything in the room.

“This isn’t right,” he muttered, his voice low enough that it might not have been meant for either of them to hear. His hands paused, and for a heartbeat the steady, seasoned healer looked unsettled. He glanced at Lexa, then at Ontari, as if searching for any sign that this wasn’t as dire as it seemed.

Lexa’s jaw tightened. She cupped Marie’s small hand between both of her own again, her thumbs brushing circles into skin that felt too cool. “Little star,” she whispered, leaning close enough that her forehead almost touched her daughter’s temple. “It’s over, you are safe, you are here. Come back to me.” Her voice frayed on the last word.

Nothing. No flicker of recognition, no tightening of her fingers, not even the faintest change in the girl’s breathing.

Ontari’s fists curled at her sides, her nails biting into her palms as she forced herself to keep watching. Marie’s stillness chilled her more than the blood ever had. Blood meant fight, meant something left to struggle for. This emptiness was worse.

Nyko finished binding the arm again with deliberate care. When he leaned back, his expression was grim. “Her body is holding,” he said at last, his tone clipped, “but her mind… her mind is slipping further.”

Lexa’s lips pressed into a bloodless line, but she said nothing for a moment.

Ontari exhaled sharply through her nose, a sound too close to a growl, and looked away for the first time. She hated how powerless it made her feel, hated that the girl who had once smiled at her with real warmth now looked like nothing but a shell.

After a moment of tense silence, the commander finally broke it. She gave the girl’s frail fingers a soft squeeze. “I will make her eat more later” she assured the healer, although her tone wavered noticeably.

Nyko’s professional expression morphed into a frown, when he cast a glance at the broth he had left earlier for his patient. It seemed as if the girl had barely ingested anything of it. He couldn’t even tell for sure if Marie had drunk anything from it at all. He had been gone from the quarters for the majority of the day. There was no sign of any other food either.

“If this is all she had all day, it won’t do” he said in a critical tone. He reached out for the cup himself. He knew easily enough how to trigger a swallow reflex, and he highly doubted the commander would have forced the girl to drink in such a fashion.

Ontari watched with her stomach tightening how the healer put an arm beneath Marie’s smaller body, pulling her almost upright, letting her head weakly rest against his shoulder. He tilted her head even further, putting the rim of the cup to her unresponsive lips, tipping it slightly and at the same time cautiously massaging the girl’s throat. She didn’t appear to be drowning but actually swallowed down the broth against her will.

Ontari’s nails dug deeper into her palms as she watched. Every instinct screamed at her to snatch Marie back, to bare her teeth and protect her from being handled like some broken doll. Her muscles bunched, but Lexa’s presence beside her kept her rooted to the floor. If the commander wasn’t stopping him, she couldn’t, either.

Lexa’s chest ached as she watched her daughter’s throat work weakly under Nyko’s fingers. Each swallow sounded too loud in the suffocating stillness of the room. “Enough,” she rasped after the third sip, her voice raw.

Nyko obeyed, lowering Marie carefully back against the pillows. He checked her pulse once more; thumb pressed firmly against her wrist. His sigh was thin and grim. “Better than nothing,” he muttered, though his expression betrayed his unease.

Ontari’s jaw was clenched so tightly it hurt. “She didn’t even know she drank,” she hissed, her voice low, furious and pained all at once. “What kind of living is that?”

Nyko levelled her with a sharp look. “The only kind there is until she finds her will again. Her body cannot wait for her mind to catch up.”

Lexa shut her eyes briefly. The truth of his words cut, because she knew he was right. Marie’s body had to be kept alive, even if her spirit refused. Still, she reached to smooth a damp lock of hair from her daughter’s forehead, gentling the harshness of the moment with the only thing she still could: tenderness.

Nyko’s look remained sharp as his eyes travelled between them. He could tell neither of them had sat foot out of the quarters in hours, neither had they eaten, or rested. “This cannot be allowed to continue like this” he said in a strong tone.

Lexa’s eyes opened immediately again, and her jaw clenched. The healer’s attention wasn’t on Marie at the moment, so she could guess what this was going to be about.

Ontari frowned as well, while even Risha picked up its enormous head from Marie’s chest, looking at the healer with icy blue eyes.

“Her state is worrying, but it also clearly implies that Marie isn’t going to recover quickly. It will most likely take more than days, but rather weeks until she gets better. If she doesn’t give up that is. I can only heal her body, not her mind. But this means she’ll need you strong and rested next to her. Eat, sleep, and get some fresh air. There are others who will willingly step in to aid her care” the healer assessed ignoring the commander’s darkening expression as he spoke.

Lexa’s nostrils flared faintly, but she kept her voice even. “I will not leave her.”

Nyko didn’t flinch. He’d been a healer too long, seen too many stubborn parents cling to bedside vigils until they themselves collapsed. “You will, if you intend to be of any use to her. If you fall, who remains to hold her? Who protects her then?”

The commander’s jaw tightened visibly. Her hand lingered against Marie’s damp hair, stroking once more before it settled back around her daughter’s limp fingers. For a moment, she looked less like Heda, and more like a mother refusing the unthinkable.

Ontari’s dark eyes flicked between them, her frown deepening. She wasn’t used to anyone challenging the commander — not like this, not so bluntly. She’d thought Lexa unshakable, untouchable. Yet here was Nyko, pushing her as if she were anyone else. Ontari didn’t know if she should be outraged on her behalf or grateful someone dared speak the truth aloud.

Nyko’s tone softened, but only slightly. “Gustus, Anya, even myself — we can take watches. The girl will not be alone. But she cannot survive on devotion alone, Commander. Nor can you.”

Lexa shut her eyes briefly. The truth of his words cut sharper than she cared to admit. He was right — she felt it in her bones, in the heaviness dragging her shoulders down, in the burning of her eyes. Still, when she opened them again, her gaze burned steady, and her thumb brushed faintly over Marie’s fragile knuckles. “I will not abandon her.” She knew Anya would gladly help, but Lexa wasn’t ready to call the general back and definitely not to leave her unattended with Marie.

Ontari straightened next to the bed, blurting before she could stop herself: “Then let me stay.”

Both adults turned toward her. Her face flushed, but she lifted her chin anyway. “If you need to leave… for food, or rest, or council… I’ll be here. She won’t be alone.”

Lexa studied her in silence, weighing. The instinct to refuse sparked hot in her chest — to say Marie was hers, that no one else could guard her heart. But Ontari’s dark eyes held a flicker she recognized: the same vow she herself had made, fierce and unyielding.

Nyko looked satisfied. “Then it’s settled. None of us can pour from an empty vessel.” He began to pack his kit, though his eyes still lingered on Marie’s slack face with worry.

Lexa exhaled slowly, tension rippling through her shoulders. She didn’t speak her agreement aloud, but she let her grip on Marie’s hand ease, just slightly. For now, that was as much concession as she could give.

Risha laid its head back down across Marie’s chest, a low huff leaving its muzzle as though the wolf too approved of the arrangement.

~ ~ ~

Just a little while later a knock interrupted the brittle silence in the commander’s quarters. Ontari had sat down again at the other side of Marie, holding her smaller hand carefully between her own.

A handmaid entered carrying another tray with food, obviously prepared for two people. Most likely Nyko had asked for food to be sent up for them. Behind her a few others followed, carrying steaming buckets filled with hot water.

Lexa sighed slightly. She knew a bath would only enhance her tiredness, Nyko’s manipulation to stay true to her word and push her towards rest couldn’t have been clearer even if he tried.

“After you’ve eaten, you can go and rest first” Lexa turned to Ontari, finally looking up from Marie’s pale features. The child’s grey eyes had closed again a little while ago, Lexa couldn’t tell if she was sleeping.

Ontari’s head snapped up at Lexa’s words, her dark brows knitting. “No.” Her grip on Marie’s hand tightened, almost imperceptibly, but enough for Lexa to notice. “I’m not leaving her.”

The commander tilted her head, studying the girl. Ontari’s voice was steady, but her posture betrayed her — shoulders hunched forward, jaw set too tight, as though she were bracing for Lexa to order her out regardless of her protest.

The handmaids busied themselves silently, one of them setting the food on the low table, the others pouring steaming water into the waiting basin. The scent of herbs rose with the steam, filling the air with sharp mint and lavender. For a moment, the commander’s quarters felt less like a war room, less like a place where political schemes and burdens weighed, and more like a sickroom turned sanctuary.

“You’ll collapse if you go on like this,” Lexa said after a beat, her tone quieter than expected, though still firm. She glanced briefly at the tray. “If not rest, then eat. At least that.”

Ontari’s eyes flicked down at the food but didn’t move toward it. “I’ll eat here.” Her voice was quieter this time, stripped of defiance. Almost hesitant. “If you allow it… I’d rather stay on the couch. Not in my room.”

Lexa regarded her silently, considering. She hadn’t missed the phrasing — if you allow it. The nightblood, who had been raised to bow to no one but power, sounded like a child asking not to be sent away.

Her green eyes softened, almost imperceptibly. She inclined her head once. “Very well. The couch, then.”

Relief flickered across Ontari’s face, fleeting and quickly buried under her usual guarded expression. She shifted slightly closer to Marie, as though confirming the younger girl was still there, still tethered to her hand.

Lexa leaned back, only then realizing how tense her own body had been. The handmaids withdrew without another word once the water was poured and the food set, leaving behind the faint scent of herbs and a fragile stillness.

For a heartbeat, Lexa let herself believe in the illusion of peace. But deep inside, she knew it wouldn’t last. The next knock at her door might not bring food or water. It might bring Titus, or another whisper from the clans, demanding their commander return to politics while her daughter slipped further away.

She smoothed another damp strand of blonde hair from Marie’s forehead, unwilling to let her hand linger anywhere else. “Eat,” she told Ontari softly, but the command was as much for herself.

~ ~ ~

The heat of the water wrapped around her like a cocoon, loosening the knots of muscle in her back and shoulders, but Lexa couldn’t will her mind to follow. She had forced herself to eat, had even managed to let go of Marie’s hand long enough to step away. Yet the distance felt wrong, every heartbeat spent in the steaming bath pulling her further from her daughter’s side.

Her fingers curled against the rim of the tub until her knuckles blanched. Closing her eyes did nothing to help — she saw Marie’s grey gaze, blank and unseeing, her lips parting without words. A body alive but a spirit drifting. Lexa had fought wars against whole clans and never felt so powerless.

Anya’s name still echoed in her ears from earlier, rasped by Marie’s dry throat. The general’s absence lay between them like a blade, sharp and unavoidable. Lexa wondered whether to send for her sooner rather than later. But would Anya’s presence mend or only tear deeper wounds? If Marie clung to her and Anya faltered again, the damage might be beyond repair.

And Ontari. The Ice Nation nightblood had returned to the quarters, raw-eyed and heaving from her climb, then sat herself like a sentinel at Marie’s side. Lexa hadn’t expected it, not in truth. Ontari’s vow — I will not leave her again, ever — still rang in her ears. Could a girl trained to kill and to crave power truly be reshaped by loyalty to a single fragile star? Lexa wasn’t certain. But she had seen the way Marie’s fingers eased when Ontari touched them, how her own wolf had settled as though reassured. Perhaps, for now, that was enough.

She exhaled, steam filling her lungs, her jaw tightening. No strategy, no treaty, no blade could win this war for her child. All she could do was stay — and make certain no one faltered at Marie’s side.

Lexa rose from the water, droplets streaming down her skin, and wrapped herself in a towel. Duty, as always, waited on the other side of the door. But this time, it wasn’t the coalition’s duty that weighed most heavily. It was the fragile, impossible duty of keeping one child tethered to life.

Lexa returned to the main room with anticipation coiling tight in her stomach. It was irrational to fear the girl might have slipped away during her brief absence, and yet it was the first thought that clawed at her chest. Every step back toward the bed felt heavier for it.

The scene that met her made her pause.

Ontari still sat at Marie’s side, but a worn book rested open in her hands. She was reading aloud, voice low and uneven, tripping over words and trying — with little success — to shift her tone for different characters. Marie’s features were slack and peaceful, her breathing steady, and Lexa could only hope it was true sleep that kept her still.

For a heartbeat, Lexa lingered in the doorway, struck by the memory of another time: Marie flushed with fever, asking Ontari to read in exactly this way, laughing weakly when the nightblood stumbled. Now Ontari’s dark brows knit with concentration, her tongue tripping clumsily, but the effort alone was enough to soften the edges of Lexa’s guarded heart.

When she cleared her throat, Risha’s ears flicked up and Ontari jolted as though caught doing something forbidden. The book nearly slipped from her hands, her cheeks flaring with a flush she couldn’t disguise.

“You can lie down on the couch now,” Lexa said at last, her tone softened but still edged with quiet command.

Ontari closed the book quickly, placing it on the bedside table, and almost fled to the couch without daring to meet Lexa’s gaze. She moved with the hasty stiffness of someone afraid of mockery.

Lexa watched her with lips tugging into the faintest ghost of a smile. For all the brutal lessons drilled into the girl, Ontari was still easy to read when caught off guard — more girl than warrior in moments like this.

She lowered herself to the bed once more, reaching for her daughter’s hand without hesitation. The familiar warmth of that small, fragile palm grounded her instantly. Her vigil resumed, as inevitable as breath.

~ ~ ~

The knock which shattered the silence once more came a few hours later without hesitation, sharp and insistent. Titus never waited for permission long, and a moment later the door creaked open to admit him. His robes swished against the floor as he stepped into the commander’s quarters, dark eyes immediately landing on the bed. On Marie.

Lexa didn’t rise from her place at her daughter’s side. She gave him only the briefest glance, one hand still wrapped around Marie’s slack fingers.

“You’ve been absent from council for two days,” Titus began, tone already lined with disapproval. “Whispers spread quickly. Some believe you are sick. Others say you hide because you are weakened by your… household’s misfortune.” His lip curled around the word. “Rumor corrodes faith, Heda. You cannot remain hidden here.”

Lexa’s expression didn’t so much as twitch. “The council will wait.”

“Wait?” Titus echoed sharply, stepping closer until the torchlight painted his face in harsh angles. “The commander does not wait. The commander leads. Every breath you spend in this room feeds the fire of doubt. It burns louder with each hour. Send her somewhere if you must, possibly the Boat People, but return to your duty.”

Ontari shifted on the couch, spine stiff. Her eyes flicked from the flamekeeper’s taut expression to Lexa’s still face. The commander didn’t look like the unstoppable leader she had imagined when she’d first come to Polis. Right now, she looked like someone being scolded — lectured — and Ontari didn’t understand how that could be. Wasn’t Lexa Heda? Didn’t her word cut sharper than steel? Yet here was Titus, his voice rising like a parent disciplining a wayward child. It made something knot in Ontari’s stomach.

Titus wasn’t finished. “And what of your nightbloods?” His gaze snapped to Ontari, sharp as a blade. “One sits idle in your chamber instead of training. Her lessons fall behind because you indulge her presence here. The flame cannot be carried on sentiment.”

Ontari’s jaw locked, but she didn’t move. His words scalded, but more than that — they confused. For the first time, she wondered if what he preached was wrong. If loyalty born of fear and drills was really worth more than sitting here, holding Marie’s hand.

Lexa finally looked up, her green eyes cold. “Ontari remains because I will it so.”

“That will is clouded,” Titus snapped. “You forget yourself. You forget what you are. You are not her mother by blood. You are the commander. You are the flame’s vessel, not a grieving parent. This… adoption has done nothing but distract you from your true purpose. The girl is lost. Let her go, before she drags you down with her.”

The words fell heavy, bitter. Ontari felt her fingernails bite into her palms. Lost. That word dug into her chest like a knife. She glanced at Marie’s pale face, at Lexa’s tightened jaw, and for the first time she wondered: if this was what being a leader required — severing every bond until nothing remained — was it worth it? Was power worth being this hollow?

Lexa’s control held a beat longer, her lips pressed thin, her hand stroking absently over Marie’s knuckles. But then her gaze dropped to her daughter’s slack face. The faint crease of a frown still lingered between her brows, even in her unresponsive state. What if she could hear? What if every venomous barb Titus threw was seeping into her? What if Marie absorbed not her whispered reassurances but the flamekeeper’s condemnation — and believed it?

Her vision blurred with hot fury.

“Enough.”

The word lashed out sharper than a blade, ringing through the chamber. Risha startled awake, ears flattening as a low growl rumbled in its throat. Ontari’s breath caught, wide eyes snapping to Lexa. For the first time, she saw the mask slip, saw fire blazing raw in the commander’s green eyes.

Lexa rose from the bed, standing protectively between Titus and Marie. Her voice cut through the air like iron dragged across stone. “You will not speak of her like that again. Not in my presence. Not while she breathes.”

Titus drew back slightly, but his eyes narrowed with defiance.

Lexa stepped closer, her hands trembling at her sides, though her tone remained like steel. “I am commander because I choose how to wield strength. And if I choose to fight for her, it does not make me weak — it makes me stronger than you will ever understand. My people will not see a commander undone. They will see a commander who will bleed, who will fight, for what she loves.”

Ontari’s chest heaved. Something shifted deep inside her, a fracture in the lessons drilled into her bones since childhood. Nia had taught her that love was weakness. Titus hissed the same doctrine now. Yet here sat Marie — fragile, frail, and still clinging to breath — and here stood Lexa, fire blazing brighter than any warlord Ontari had ever seen, because she loved.

And for the first time, Ontari realized: maybe love wasn’t weakness at all. Maybe it was the fiercest kind of power.

Titus’s mouth opened as if to retort, but the weight of Lexa’s glare silenced even him. She stood between him and the bed like a drawn blade, trembling with contained fire, her shadow cast long across her daughter’s frail form. Ontari’s fingers curled tighter around Marie’s slack hand, and for the first time she felt it steady her, not the other way around. Love had been called weakness her entire life, a chain to be broken — but in this moment, watching Lexa burn with it, Ontari saw something else entirely. Love was fire, fierce and consuming. Love could defy a flamekeeper, silence a room, and stand unyielding against the weight of the world. And as Marie’s shallow breaths rasped softly beneath their hands, Ontari vowed in her chest that she, too, would fight with that fire.

Chapter 69: Chapter 313

Chapter Text

Lexa was still breathing heavily when Titus finally turned on his heels and stalked out of her quarters.

Risha, who had been lowly growling at the flame keeper, gave an audible huff before the animal settled down with its muzzle pressed firmly against Marie’s shallowly rising and falling chest.

The confrontation had left Ontari deep in thought. She considered putting her thoughts into words, the commander had been open to speak in such a fashion before, but the atmosphere seemed to brittle to do this now.

The commander still appeared to be brimming with tension when the woman finally stood from the bed. “I will get some rest now. Wake me if there’s anything” Lexa said, her tone sounding strained.

Ontari immediately nodded her head and watched the woman retreat to the couch she had inhabited for the last few hours. The nightblood girl was slightly surprised that the commander wasn’t going to sleep beside Marie. She knew they usually shared a bed, but she could guess it was her presence which drove the woman towards the couch. Or was it the lingering words Titus had said?

Lexa lowered herself onto the couch with a stiffness that betrayed the storm still running through her. Her posture was rigid, one arm draped along the armrest as though even in supposed rest she must remain commander, not mother. Yet Ontari saw the exhaustion carved into the faint slump of her shoulders.

The nightblood turned back to Marie quickly, unwilling to linger too long on the commander’s weakness. She adjusted her seat closer, reclaiming Marie’s limp hand between her own. The girl’s skin was still cool, though no longer icy, her pulse faint but steady under Ontari’s thumb. The fragile rhythm became her anchor.

Lexa tried to close her eyes, but her breathing betrayed her. Even across the room, Ontari could hear the uneven draw and release of air. It was the kind of breathing of someone pretending at sleep, failing to quiet the thoughts gnawing at their mind. For a moment, Ontari wondered what it must feel like for Lexa — to carry a whole coalition on her shoulders while fearing the loss of the single fragile person who had cracked her armour.

Her dark eyes flicked to the couch. The commander had shifted, lying on her side now, one hand draped over her own stomach. The muscles along her jaw worked as though even in half-rest she argued silently with herself. Ontari looked away quickly, back to Marie. It wasn’t her place to see Lexa falter.

Time stretched in silence. The fire in the hearth popped, and the wolf shifted its great weight closer against the girl’s chest. At some point the commander’s breathing evened out, turning softer, less jagged. She had fallen into a shallow sleep at last.

Ontari let out a slow breath she hadn’t realized she was holding. It felt strange — she had never before guarded anyone’s sleep, never thought it her duty. But as she sat there, watching over both commander and friend, she realized she wanted to.

It was Marie who stirred first. The girl’s lashes fluttered, her lips parting to draw in a faint rasp of air. Ontari leaned forward instantly, tightening her grip on the fragile hand in hers.

The girl’s eyes blinked open, grey and glassy, but this time they shifted. They moved — seeking. And when they landed on Lexa, still curled on the couch, her lips parted with the barest whisper.

“Anya?” the question landed with more weight than a single word should contain.

Ontari’s stomach twisted sharply. She glanced toward the couch at once. The commander was already rising, eyes wide and alert, pulled from her shallow sleep as though the single word had been a command in itself.

Lexa was back next to the bed in a few quick strides, all traces of exhaustion wiped from her features. Her expression was a mixture of worry and tenderness when she sank onto the edge of the mattress next to Marie.

 The child’s grey eyes seemed a little more focused now as she met the commander’s gaze. “Anya…” the girl started, her voice raspy from disuse and lack of fluids, “…hasn’t returned?”

Lexa’s expression hardened noticeably for a second, before she took one of Marie’s smaller hands in between her own. “Anya is in council, she’ll return later.” It wasn’t exactly a lie. There was a council meeting ongoing, and Anya would be taking part in her stead. She was certain Anya would practically storm out of the meeting if she sent her a summon now, but Lexa wanted to speak to the general alone first, without Marie listening.

As the tiny traces of hope vanished from Marie’s grey eyes, Lexa wasn’t sure how much longer she could keep the girl waiting until she summoned the general.

Ontari watched the exchange with a slight frown. She could understand why the commander had basically thrown the general out. But it was clear Marie’s thoughts revolved around her absence.

Lexa reached for the cup left behind by Nyko containing a strong broth meant to keep Marie’s body as nourished as possible while the girl wasn’t healthy enough to actually eat.

The girl weakly turned her head away from the cup, lips pressed into a thin line of mute resistance.

“Marie, your body needs nourishment to heal” Lexa tried to gently reason with her daughter, careful not to speak about “strength”.

She almost thought she’d persuaded the blonde girl a little too easily, when Marie turned her head back to look at her. The way the girl’s grey eyes seemed to burn with intensity was the most alive she had seen them since discovering the girl after her attempt.

Risha’s ears flicked back though as if sensing something dangerous.

“And if I don’t want to?” Marie’s words were like being doused in icy rain.

Lexa froze in her movements, the cup poised in her hand as if the very air had turned solid around her, from the weight pressing on her chest it may as well have. For a heartbeat she couldn’t breathe. It was one thing to hear Nyko caution her about the possibility that Marie may not wish to fight, it was completely different to hear it from her daughter’s lips as if the choice was already made. Lexa thought she had already prepared herself internally, but the pain ripping at her heart belied that.

While Ontari saw the pain flash clearly, unhidden for once, through the commander’s green eyes, her own reaction leaned toward anger. If she wasn’t afraid of physically hurting Marie and opening her sutures again, she would have taken the younger girl’s shoulders and physically shook sense back into her. Even though she couldn’t give way to that reaction, Ontari couldn’t keep silent either. “You can’t decide to give up, not now” she snapped, tone sharpened by her anger mixed with growing fear that Marie was indeed giving up.

Marie didn’t give a verbal answer, she turned her head slightly towards the older girl sitting on her other side, blinking at her as if she hadn’t recognized her earlier. The blinks were slow, as if Marie’s mind was too sluggish to understand the words.

Lexa’s grip tightened around the child’s smaller hand she still held. When she spoke her eyes shimmered suspiciously, her tone was soft but underlined with firmness. “You may not want to right now, little star. But I do and I will continue until you do so again yourself. I want you here and I will not let you go.”

Risha shifted uneasily at Marie’s side, giving a low whine as though echoing Lexa’s words.

Marie’s eyes had turned to look at Lexa. It was almost physically obvious how the gears in her mind turned. The previous intensity of her gaze wavered and gave way to exhaustion again.

A part of Lexa wished to gather the smaller body into her arms, rocking Marie until she looked peaceful again, whispering reassurances that everything would be fine. But she knew the girl wouldn’t believe this and she wasn’t certain the child would accept such closeness right now. She thought it wiser not to push her. Having to sit beside her with such a lost look on her features, as if Marie didn’t know anymore how to continue breathing, felt like a special kind of torture.

“You don’t need to know how right now, little star, just stay with me” Lexa broke the tense silence carefully. She let her thumb brush over the child’s knuckles softly, hoping to ground her with the touch.

Marie’s gaze flickered and she exhaled audibly, before she looked at the cup the commander still held in her other hand.

Lexa brought it closer to her lips and felt a part of the weight pressing on her chest ease while she physically helped Marie drink the broth. The cup wasn’t completely drained when Marie turned her head away and closer her eyes, clearly ending the conversation for now. The child had drunk much more now than the measly three sips she had allowed before, so, Lexa counted this as a definite win for now.

“Sleep, my little star” she murmured to the girl, who was already slipping away, breathing deepening in front of her eyes.

~ ~ ~

A few hours later Ontari watched in silence how Lexa gathered each and every weapon hidden inside the commander’s quarters.

Nyko had come to look after Marie again. The bandages on her arms didn’t need changing yet, the healer seemed alarmed to hear Lexa’s report on what the child had said when she was last awake. He cautioned them again just how dangerous a single unwatched moment could proof to be, especially if there were weapons in sight. The dagger, Lexa had gifted to Marie in TonDC, had been cleaned and had been sitting on one of the bedside tables, in sight and in reach.

The commander had taken the warning in silence, immediately springing into action. Ontari was in all honesty slightly surprised to note just how many weapons, especially smaller daggers, were hidden around the quarters. If she had ever thought the commander to be easily taken down in her quarters, she was surely mistaken, not that she still thought in such terms.

Marie was asleep again on the large bed, Risha pressed to her side. The wolf was obviously intent on keeping vigil with its human just as much as the commander and Ontari agreed to.

Lexa personally carried an armful of weapons out of the commander’s quarters. She quickly passed down the corridor to the room Anya and the girls had inhabited in the past. The floor and the table had been scrubbed clean. No evidence of what had happened in this very room was left. Still, when Lexa pushed the door open and walked over to the table her mind conjured a flash of memory, seeing the blood on the floor, Ontari bend over Marie’s slumped over form.

Her hands shook as she placed the weapons on the table and when Lexa looked back over at the wall, she now only saw clean stone, just a shadow of residual moisture left where the handmaidens had scrubbed it.

Lexa sat down on one of the chairs next to the table, her mind still reeling. She had taken the little radio with her on impulse. Now, her eyes burned with the tears she refused herself and she exhaled shakily. As commander Lexa had felt herself threatening to break under the pressure of command before, but this helpless feeling was different. There had always been battle plans, strategic speeches to be prepared, warring clans to be soothed, and if there was no soothing than there had been battles to be prepared. She couldn’t command a will to life into her daughter, no matter how much she wished it. Although she could fathom that Ontari was most likely warring with the similar feelings in her mind, the nightblood was still a girl, a girl Lexa knew she couldn’t burden with more. When Marie had been missing in Azgeda, presumed dead, Clarke had been at her side, lending her strength where Lexa had begun to falter. Now, she was alone, and Lexa felt the small weight of the radio in her hand like a magnetic force.

Absentmindedly, Lexa traced the form of the radio with her thumb, brushing over the button which could summon Clarke’s voice. She had little doubt that the blonde healer would be waiting on the other side of this technological connection. The need to press down on the button pulsed in sync with her own heartbeat, but something kept Lexa from fully pressing on the button and giving into her own need.

Her mind felt too full, too much fallen into chaos. It wasn’t a new sensation for her to be pulled into opposite directions. Still, the stakes felt more pressing now.

Lexa knew she needed to speak to Anya soon. Every time their daughter woke to the general’s continued absence was a wound left festering. No matter how much Lexa would prefer to keep Anya away for now, it was clear Marie needed the woman.

She also couldn’t remain at Marie’s bedside forever. Letting Titus and Anya handle meetings in her stead was only a temporary solution. No matter how much Lexa resented it personally, but every meeting where she was absent would only sharpen suspicion against her strength.

She didn’t know how the atmosphere in the coalition might have shifted during the two meetings held by Titus and Anya. Both were formidable strategists on their own, but the coalition would not take their words the same way they would if the commander spoke.

Unfortunately, the same would go for Marie. She had appointed the girl as her second before she had adopted her as her daughter. The coalition would continue looking for the child, noting every continued day of absence. There was no precedent for this. A commander never had adopted a child in the past as far as their records told. There had been seconds to a commander in the past, but there was little information about the nature of the bond between second and commander. It was natural for their people to look for strength in a young second. But Lexa wasn’t thinking about strength any longer, Marie first needed to survive at all.

Now that the flame had fallen silent, Lexa couldn’t question the commanders before her. She was truly alone, left without their guidance. She couldn’t let this slip at the moment. If Titus or the clans heard, Lexa knew her status as commander would immediately be questioned. It wouldn’t take long until the clans demanded a replacement for her.

Finally, Lexa did press down on the button. “Clarke?” she didn’t say more, voice precariously breaking at the edges.

The static didn’t seem to last for a longer than a few seconds before an answer came. Beside herself Lexa’s lips ghosted into a smile that her assumption had been correct, Clarke had been waiting for her to reach out again.

“Lexa, I didn’t think you’d actually reach out again.”

Lexa huffed lightly under her breath. No one spoke to her in the way Clarke did, no one dared.

“I didn’t think I would” she admitted, and her gaze blurred with tears at the old familiarity between them.

 The silence held for a moment, almost untypical for the blonde healer. Clarke rarely seemed to think long about what she said, blurting out her thoughts instead. “What changed?”

Lexa swallowed the lump lodged in her throat down forcefully. Her fingers shook again when she pressed the button down to answer. “I don’t know”, she said. Putting into her words that she felt herself threatening to break seemed unthinkable.

And yet, Clarke seemed to look through it immediately. “Tell me what happened, Lexa, you aren’t alone.”

Lexa did huff louder this time and her voice turned bitter when she retorted. “We both know that’s a lie” she bristled slightly. Clarke had been at her side long enough before their separation to know better.

“Maybe” Clarke’s answer was measure for once, ringing with sadness. Lexa was internally grateful the blonde didn’t point out that she would’ve already come back to Polis if the commander asked for it. “But I am still here. That doesn’t change. So, talk to me.”

Lexa’s throat felt tight at the simplicity the blonde healer offered her. She considered her next words carefully. Before their separation it had become almost easy to share her private thoughts with Clarke, but Lexa feared she’d indeed break if she put all her thoughts into words. So, she started with what weighed the most on her right now.

“Marie is doing worse than I hoped” Lexa’s voice wavered noticeably, and a tear rolled down her cheek unbidden as the memory of the little girl’s defiance earlier flashed in front of her eyes shortly. “She…” her voice broke off completely when she tried to tell Clarke exactly what happened.

“Lexa…” the sympathy in Clarke’s tone was obvious even through the distance of the radio. “I wish I could take you in my arms right now. You’re crying, aren’t you?”

Lexa let out a humourless laugh, letting the sound of the sob in her throat carry through the connection. Clarke had seen her cry before, the blonde had never thought any less of her afterwards. She couldn’t risk her daughter seeing just how much this was wearing her down though, neither did she want Ontari to see.

“What happened, Lexa?” Clarke pressed gently, when the static remained for long moments.

Lexa inhaled shakily as she wiped at her cheek, although Clarke couldn’t see her tears through the radio. “She woke up again earlier”, she had to force the words out, low and strained, “She had been apathetic before, but she looked at me with fierceness in her eyes again. I hoped she was coming back, but she asked what if she doesn’t want to heal, to live.”

The silence which settled felt sharp and oppressive and Lexa wiped at her cheeks again. When Clarke finally did speak her voice was heavy with understanding and feeling. “What did you say to her?”

“That I wouldn’t let her go, that I would want for her until she could again”, Lexa’s voice cracked again, “but what if I can’t make her want to again?”

“Lexa”, Clarke immediately answered this time. Her tone was firm, like she used it before when she disagreed with Lexa taking too much burden on herself for her people. “You’re not supposed to make her want to live, you can’t, no one can. You’re only supposed to stay. That’s what you gave me after Mount Weather as well, when I didn’t want to continue either, Marie will need that same endurance now.”

Lexa swallowed sharply. She remembered when Clarke had been brought to Polis, broken and furious, refusing to speak to her. She had given space to the blonde healer then, kept her physically sheltered and alive, and waited.

“You don’t mean to say that I should distance myself from her now” Lexa questioned sharper than she had intended, internally defensive at the very idea.

“No, Lexa, that’s the last thing Marie will need. I know it’ll be hard to be there for her when she doesn’t want you to. It’ll take time. I can only repeat that you can continue calling me whenever you wish to talk. It won’t get any easier soon I fear.” Clarke’s answer was honest.

Lexa nodded although she knew Clarke couldn’t see the gesture. Her eyes were dry again; her hands had stopped shaking. She would figure out later how she would find the time to remain with Marie. “Thank you, Clarke” she said simply, her tone soft, but surer again. It wasn’t a promise that she would take Clarke up on the offer, but it was simple acknowledgement still.

“Anytime”, Clarke replied. The line clicked softly as Lexa finally released the button and silence filled the room again. It didn’t feel oppressive this time; she was calmer again. She smiled sadly at the little radio as she set it down on the table. She would leave it here for now as a continued option of support.

Chapter 70: Chapter 314

Chapter Text

Lexa left the radio on the table before she straightened and rose from the chair. She hoped that Marie was still sleeping, she hadn’t been gone from her quarters long yet.

So, she left the room briefly, waving to one of the guards stationed on the floor. “Have Anya summoned immediately” she ordered briskly, returning to the empty room. It would be the perfect place to speak her warning to the general before she allowed the older woman back at Marie’s side. If their daughter woke during her absence, she was certain Ontari would send word immediately.

Lexa didn’t try to hide that her eyes were still red rimmed from crying during her short conversation with Clarke, when Anya practically burst through the door what felt like moments later.

There was no moment of hesitation when Anya pushed the doors open, but her breathing was audibly elated and she looked dishevelled, as if she had hurried to follow the summons.

The colour visibly drained from Anya’s features as she briefly looked at the wall where they had found Marie what felt like days ago now. Her brown eyes widened when her gaze took in Lexa’s appearance, sitting calmly at the table, radio still in hand, a bunch of weapons lying there as well.

“She’s…not?” Anya faltered for words.

Lexa couldn’t remember ever having seen her previous mentor falter like that. She still remembered how she’d looked up to her as a child. Anya had been practically famous among Trikru, having risen the ranks in their army with amazing speed and skill.

She let the silence hang for another minute, watching the older woman’s jaw clench mutely. Before she finally said, “She’s asleep right now.”

Pain flashed over Anya’s features openly at not having been informed that there had been a change in Marie’s condition during her absence. Her jaw tightened as she briskly inclined her head. “Thank you for telling me”, the older woman seemed to have to force the words out. Her body angled slightly back towards the door as if an internal force was pulling her out of the room and most likely back into the commander’s quarters and to Marie’s bedside.

“The only reason I am telling you this and had you summoned is because Marie has been asking for you first thing when she woke” Lexa admitted in a measured tone, while her grip on the radio tightened. The words tasted wrong on her tongue. Admitting that Marie’s first words hadn’t been “mommy” or “Lexa” but asking solely about Anya instead. But she knew this wasn’t about her pride, it was about Marie alone.

Anya swallowed forcefully, her throat bobbing visibly, while the pain in her brown eyes deepened. Her posture seemed to deflate and with shaking hands she reached out towards the backrest of the chair opposite of Lexa, steadying herself as she gripped onto it. “Can I see her?”

The question was posed carefully, her former mentor’s voice tightly controlled and still her doubts and regret bled into it, letting it waver and fray.

“If it were solely me deciding, you’d have left Polis already” Lexa retorted in an icy tone. She ignored the way Anya flinched and looked as if she’d been physically punched. “But this isn’t about me, or even about you, it’s about Marie.”

Anya’s grip on the backrest tightened until her knuckles were white beneath the skin. “You haven’t left her alone right now, have you?” she questioned, eyes shortly flicking through the room as if to make sure Marie wasn’t in eyesight.

Lexa’s eyes flashed dangerously at the implication. “No, Ontari is with her right now.”

Anya’s eyes widened slightly at the information. Hearing that her second was allowed next to Marie, while she had been sent away, was bound to sting.

Lexa didn’t care for her former mentor’s pain at the moment though. “When you go to Marie, you will not be alone with her. I don’t trust you to” she added the last part sharply, voicing her current lack of trust clearly.

Anya’s lips pressed into a thin line, but she didn’t try to argue. A muscle in her jaw worked, the only visible crack in her composure, but she inclined her head briskly in acknowledgement.

Lexa’s eyes narrowed at the older woman. She hadn’t expected for Anya to accept this without any arguing. “You will go to her”, Lexa continued in a firm tone, “but you will not speak of your guilt, politics, strength, or anything which could threaten to pull her down further. You will listen; you will be there. You will do what she allows, nothing more, nothing less. And if you can’t be what she needs right now, then there is no place for you here.”

For a heartbeat, Anya’s gaze flickered back to the door behind them, towards the direction where she knew Marie was waiting. Her composure cracked further as pain and longing etched themselves into her features, before she forced them away, straightening slightly. “Understood”, the general finally said firmly.

“I doubt you understand her condition. You’ve pushed her further than she can endure” Lexa continued almost relentlessly.

Anya’s features pulled into a frown, her lips a bloodless line by now. The tremble of her hands was almost hidden by the force which gripped onto the backrest now.

“She doesn’t want to heal and survive” Lexa added then and her own voice wavered once again.

Anya’s mouth opened as if to argue, disbelieve was clear on her features for a moment, as if she didn’t want to believe the truth of Lexa’s words. Her expression drained of colour once more when she finally read the truth in Lexa’s eyes. “I…” she started, grip tightening even further. Lexa thought to hear the wood of the chair creak in protest. “I never meant to turn her into this”, the general said with regret clear in every fibre of her being.

Lexa’s breath staggered slightly, remembering how she had said almost the exact same words to Clarke. Still, it didn’t earn Anya her forgiveness right now. She believed her that she hadn’t done this intentionally. What she could not forgive so easily though was that Anya had been on their journey for weeks with Marie, sitting by and watching without any interference how Marie must have slipped away further with each passing day.

“I believe you” she acknowledged Anya’s words, the only mercy she granted the general. “And still, you did nothing when she slipped away in front of your eyes.” Her voice sharpened into ice, each word striking clean and cold.

Anya’s gaze faltered. She looked away, eyes squeezing shut as though to block out the truth now laid bare between them. When she looked back, the careful composure had cracked entirely; her gaze was raw, stripped of all defence.

“I didn’t want to see”, the general admitted, tone tinted heavily with deep regret, “I thought she was adapting, finally becoming a warrior. You and Tris didn’t break, neither did I.”

Lexa clenched her teeth together for a moment, carefully measuring her reply. When she finally spoke, her voice was low but carried the unyielding edge of command.
“When we adopted Marie, we became her mothers. She is not me. She is not you. She doesn’t have to become a warrior.” Lexa’s green eyes locked on Anya’s, steady and unwavering. “She is our family. That is the priority.”

“Still, one day the coalition will demand her to stand beside you again, strong,” Anya retorted carefully, though the conviction in her voice wavered.

Lexa’s hands tightened into fists. The sound of her knuckles creaking filled the tense room. Then, in a rare display of unrestrained emotion, her fist slammed down onto the table with a sharp crack, rattling the weapons laid out upon it.

“Enough!” she cut the general off, her voice ringing through the room like a blade’s edge. Her green eyes burned, and for a heartbeat she looked every bit the warrior who had commanded armies. “If you cannot let go of this, then it may be better you stay away.”

Anya flinched visibly, the force of the outburst hitting like a physical blow. She shook her head sharply, her grip on the backrest still tight enough to whiten her knuckles. “No,” she rasped, then steadied her voice with effort. “No, I will be there for her.” The insistence was clear, but her tone wavered under the weight of Lexa’s authority. They both knew Lexa could bar her from Marie’s side with a single command — and that Anya would have no choice but to obey.

“I will be there to make sure of it”, Lexa retorted coldly.

Anya swallowed thickly at the reminder that she wasn’t trusted in that role any longer. The sting was obvious in the way her throat bobbed, and her shoulders tightened, but she inclined her head in acceptance all the same. There was no argument left to make — not here, not now.

Silence settled between them like a drawn bowstring, stretched tight and ready to snap.

“The meeting…” Anya began cautiously, perhaps reaching for the safer ground of politics, but Lexa cut her off immediately.

“I don’t want to hear it,” she said, her tone brooking no dissent. “The coalition can wait. Marie cannot. And I will not have her wake again to your absence.”

She remembered vividly the many nights when Marie had slept curled between the two of them, small and warm, seeking safety in their shared presence. The mornings when the girl had woken nestled between them, soothed through the darkness by one or the other during her countless night terrors.

She remembered how Anya had held Marie when they had believed her dead before reaching the Boat People — how the general had refused to let go of the child’s body, arms locked as if holding her could keep death itself at bay.

She remembered laughter too — mornings when Marie’s giggles had echoed through their chambers as one of them tickled her, the rare sound of uncomplicated joy. Anya, who so rarely showed softness to anyone else, had given Marie gentleness without hesitation. She had bathed the child, tended her through sickness and injury, watched over her as fiercely as Lexa herself had.

This was the Anya Marie needed now, not the general, not the warrior, not the woman consumed by politics or guilt. But the one who had once offered warmth, safety, and love.

Lexa watched Anya in silent contemplation for long moments, her green eyes sharp but weary. “Marie doesn’t you need as a general right now.” She said at last, voice steady but carrying an undertone of a plea. “She needs you as her other mother. Can you be that again?”

The older woman swallowed visibly. Guilt flashed across her face again and Lexa wondered if Anya was perhaps remembering the same nights and mornings she had. After a heartbeat she inclined her head in acceptance. Her tone was grave when she said, “I will try.”

Lexa inclined her head slowly, accepting the general’s promise without softening entirely. “Good”, she said, her tone even but underlined once again with firmness. “Remember this, she is fragile now, even more so than you’ve ever seen. One careless word, one moment of pressure, and you could push her further away than either of us can bring her back from again.”

Her green eyes locked with Anya’s gaze, unwavering. “If you falter, even once, I will not hesitate to keep you from her.”

When Anya inclined her head in acknowledgement once more, Lexa finally stood from the table. She had said her piece, it was time to return to Marie, she had been gone long enough.

~ ~ ~

The slight distance towards the commander’s quarters had never felt so long for Anya. What Lexa had just said to her, weighed heavily on her mind. Internally a small part of her still resisted the idea that Marie had indeed completely broken under the pressure, losing her will to live. She had trained countless warriors, watched strong souls falter and rise again. Surely, Marie, their little spark of mischief and defiance, couldn’t have simply slipped away.

For all of the commander’s usually strategy, and much of it Anya had shaped years ago, coming up with such a lie couldn’t be part of it. The thought settled like a stone into her chest. The part of her which still thought about politics and the outcome of the last meetings finally fell silent, as she stepped through the door, into the quarters she had shared with Marie and Lexa, into the quarters she hadn’t been welcome in any longer.

The warmth of the fire hit her first, stoked stronger than usual, mingling with the faint scent of medical herbs. Once, this room had been a refuge, laughter over shared meals, quiet mornings tangled in warmth. Now, it felt like a sickroom. Her steps faltered on the threshold before she forced herself to continue inside.

Her eyes narrowed with a flash of jealousy at the sight in front of her. Ontari sat perched on the edge of the bed, one of Marie’s smaller hands cradled between her own. The gesture, the way her thumb brushed clumsily over the girl’s knuckles, was almost tender in its awkwardness. 

Something hot twisted in Anya’s chest then. That should have been her place. She was the one who had held Marie through fever and nightmares, the one whose heartbeat the girl had fallen asleep against so many nights in the past.

But when Ontari’s head lifted and her dark eyes met Anya’s across the room, the softness in her expression vanished. The nightblood’s gaze hardened instantly, and her grip on Marie’s hand shifted, not to possessiveness, but to fiery protectiveness, as if silently daring Anya to try and take that place from her. 

Risha, ever attuned to the shifting tides, lifted its massive head from Marie’s side. Its icy blue eyes flicked towards Lexa first as the commander into the room ahead of Anya. When the wolf’s attention turned to her, its ears pinned back, and a growl vibrated from deep within its chest.

The sound struck Anya like a slap, not loud enough to truly be threatening, but enough to remind her that she had been gone, that her place here wasn’t unquestioned anymore and deep-down she knew that she could only blame herself for it.

Lexa crossed the room with the quiet, sure-footed ease of someone who belonged here, whose presence by Marie’s bedside was as natural as breath. She lowered herself toward the bed, movements fluid and unhurried, and reached out to gently sweep a damp lock of blonde hair from Marie’s forehead. The touch was instinctive, almost unconscious. “Did she wake?” the commander questioned the nightblood not unkindly.

Ontari shook her head at once, continuing to hold on to Marie’s hand. “I would have sent word”, she retorted, her voice clipped with an edge that hadn’t been there before. It wasn’t insolence, it was defence, raw and protective. 

Lexa inclined her head slightly, accepting the response without rebuke. Ontari’s reaction told her more than her actual words. The girl had stayed vigilant, had taken her role here seriously.

Anya’s throat tightened as she watched the easy rhythm between commander and nightblood, something she had once been a part of. Now though, she stood at the threshold of it, not banished, but not fully welcomed either. The distance wasn’t measured in steps, but in trust lost and time squandered.  

She hadn’t just lost Lexa’s trust. Ontari’s guarded gaze and the way the girl’s thumb still stroked protectively over Marie’s knuckles made it painfully clear. She had lost hers too. Ontari was younger, less experienced, but in this room, she stood firmly in a place Anya had once occupied without question.

A sharp ache lodged itself inside Anya’s chest, the weight of her own failures pressing down. She wanted to reach for Marie’s hand, to reclaim some piece of what had been, but instinct, or perhaps guilt, told her that this wasn’t the time. Marie’s bedside wasn’t the place to redeem herself. Anya attempt would only shift the fragile balance Lexa and Ontari had built in her absence.

So, she stayed back for now, letting Lexa take the lead. For the first time in a long while, Anya accepted that her presence her was no longer unquestioned. She would have to earn it back.

Lexa straightened slowly, her hand lingering on Marie’s forehead for a moment before she turned her head toward Anya. The commander’s green eyes were steady and unreadable, but there was a quiet authority in them that made the air thicken between them with unspoken tension.

“Come”, Lexa said at last, inkling her head toward the other side of the bed. The single word held no warmth, but neither did it carry rejection. It was permission, measured and deliberate.

Anya’s breath hitched softly. For a heartbeat, she stood frozen, as if unsure whether she had heard correctly. Then she moved, carefully, almost reverently, around the edge of the room, taking the opposite side from Ontari. Risha’s ears flicked as she passed, the wolf’s gaze tracking her closely, but its growl thankfully didn’t return.

She lowered herself onto the edge of the mattress with far less confidence than Ontari had. Her movements were hesitant, where they once would have been fluid. Her hands hovered above Marie’s arm for a moment, fingers trembling visibly. She remembered the countless nights when she had scooped the girl up without thought, when Marie had borrowed against her side with unguarded trust. Now, even the simple act of reaching out felt weighted.

“Gently”, Lexa reminded her softly. It wasn’t a reprimand, but a warning.

Anya nodded once, swallowing hard once again, and finally let her fingers brush lightly against Marie’s hand. The girl didn’t stir. Her skin was cool, her pulse faint beneath Anya’s fingertips. The general’s chest tightened painfully at the contact. This was the first time she’d touched her since they had found the girl after her attempt. It hadn’t been longer than two days in which she hadn’t seen the child, but she already looked frail. The bandages on her arms looked too thick and heavy. Her complexion still several shades too pale to be considered healthy.

Across from her, Ontari didn’t move, but her dark eyes watched every small gesture with quiet suspicion, like a sentinel unwilling to yield her post. Lexa, standing between them, remained steady, almost the quiet centre around which all their grief orbited.

For the first time since stepping through the door, Anya felt the weight of her place return to her. Not as a general, not even as a warrior, but as something far more fragile. A mother who had faltered, and who was now being allowed a second chance, under constant watchful eyes.

She wasn’t certain if she was imagining it, but it felt as if the girl’s fingers softened faintly beneath her touch, loosening their tension by a fraction. Anya’s throat tightened as she took in Marie’s sharp, almost hollow features. It was as though the child’s small body was still vanishing before their eyes.

It happened so subtly that for a heartbeat, Anya thought she’d imagined it. Marie’s fingers twitched faintly beneath hers, a tiny, fragile movement, but enough to send a ripple through the room.

Ontari straightened immediately, dark eyes sharpening as if bracing for battle. Her thumb stilled against Marie’s knuckles; her whole body poised in quiet vigilance. Lexa moved closer to the bed without hesitation, her green eyes locked on her daughter’s face.

Marie’s brow furrowed, a shallow line creasing between her pale eyebrows. Her lips parted, drawing in a shaky breath that sounded louder than it should have in the stillness of the room. Her eyelids fluttered once, before her grey eyes cracked open a sliver, unfocused at first, then shifting sluggishly toward the source of the touch at her hand.

Anya froze. Those eyes, even glassy, but still unmistakable Marie’s landed on her. For a heartbeat the girl’s gaze didn’t hold recognition, only confusion, as if she couldn’t place who was sitting beside her. The realisation hit Anya like a physical blow, stealing the air from her lungs. She’d expected tears, maybe relief, possibly even anger, but she hadn’t expected this distance.

Lexa reached out and touched the girl’s shoulder lightly. “Little star”, she murmured softly, her voice weaving through the silence.

Marie blinked again, her lips moving soundlessly. Her gaze slid from Anya towards Lexa with a flicker of something surfacing for a moment.

“Hey”, Anya whispered, the single word catching awkwardly in her throat. Her voice had never sounded so unsure. She had meant to say more, to offer comfort or an apology, but the orders from Lexa, and perhaps her own guilt, held her tongue. So, she simply stayed still, letting Marie look at her, not trying to push.

The girl’s grey eyes remained on her a moment longer, before her lashes already lowered again. Her fingers twitched once more beneath Anya’s hand, not quite pulling away, but not gripping back either.

Lexa exhaled slowly, shoulders softening just slightly. Ontari, still watchful, eased her rigid posture slightly, but kept her gaze fixed on Marie’s face.

The moment had been fragile, but real. For the first time, Anya was no longer on the outside of the room looking in. She was beside Marie again, if the connection between them still wavered.

Chapter 71: Chapter 315

Chapter Text

“This happened before?” Anya finally spoke into the silence which had settled thickly into the room. Her eyes only briefly left Marie’s slightly falling and rising chest, buried beneath the furs, to shortly glance at the commander questionably.

Lexa inclined her head, her expression controlled but weary. “She switches between apathy and lucid moments; those take different forms each time.”

Anya sighed under her breath and her shoulders sagged. Hearing about their daughter’s condition in theory was one thing, sitting beside her in waiting and having to watch helplessly another entirely. The girl who she had assumed to shape into strength now lay on the bed as fragile as glass, and Anya could do nothing but watch. She exhaled a long, low breath through her nose, the sound barely audible, but weighted with her internal frustration and sorrow.

Ontari didn’t speak, but Anya felt the nightblood girl’s watchful eyes flick toward her briefly, assessing and cautious, before settling back on Marie. The girl’s protective posture continued.

Lexa’s thumb brushed absently over the back of Marie’s limp hand, the steady, rhythmic motion an anchor more for herself than for the child, who seemed to have slipped back into sleep. “Nyko warned us this will not change quickly”, she added quietly. “We may see more of this before anything truly shifts.”

Anya nodded slowly, the reality sinking in like ice. She forced herself to keep her touch gentle and steady. She had come here as a mother, not a general. That meant being forced to endure the helplessness, standing watch without weapons, waiting for a battle only Marie could decide to fight.

A while later Marie stirred again, faintly at first, just a small twitch of her fingers, then her breathing got sharper. Her lashes began to flutter against her pale cheeks and once more the room froze for a heartbeat.

Lexa leaned forward to the child immediately. Her grip tightened around her daughter’s hand. Ontari straightened at the same moment, her spine rigid with sudden alertness. Even Risha raised its head from its resting place on Marie’s chest, ears twitching, icy blue eyes focused on the girl’s face intently.

Anya’s breath caught audibly in anticipation, hoping that their daughter would recognize her this time. She didn’t dare moving, but her fingers hovered close to Marie’s hand, trembling visibly.

The girl’s grey eyes blinked open slowly. Her gaze remained clouded and unfocused for long moments, blinking as she looked around as if to orient herself. Her lips parted slightly when she recognized Lexa and Ontari sitting on one side of her, but no words came yet. When the child’s gaze travelled to her other side and landed no Anya, recognition sparked in her eyes finally. The mask she still tried to hold onto slipped for a brief moment, her features softened, and her grey eyes shimmered with unshed tears. When her lips parted this time, she brought out a word, strained, speaking visibly took strength.

“Ma…” the child began with the more familiar title but broke off.

Anya’s heart lurched into her throat. Her entire body leaned forward before she could stop herself, forgetting Lexa’s warning to not give more than their daughter was ready to accept. She hadn’t truly expected Marie to reach out so openly to her in the first moment of true recognition. “I’m here”, she breathed in a suspiciously shaking tone.

Lexa, who had already sensed what was coming, was slightly shaking her head, but Anya didn’t see the gesture.

Marie’s body tensed, before she corrected herself and said “General” instead formally. The vulnerability had been wiped clean from her features; her expression hardened in a blink.

“Marie…” Anya’s voice sounded thick with emotion and regret was clear in her brown eyes. The switch between the started “Mama” to “General” felt as if her heart had dropped into her stomach loke a stone. She remembered painfully how Marie hadn’t called her “mama” or “mother” a single time during their journey, if she hadn’t explicitly been ordered to.

Anya’s voice cracked slightly as she whispered her name, but Marie didn’t seem to hear it — or she refused to. Her jaw clenched, and her grey eyes turned sharp, almost brittle, as if she’d just remembered something she didn’t want to feel. The trembling vulnerability from moments before disappeared like smoke.

“You left,” Marie rasped suddenly, the words tearing through the quiet like a blade. Her breath hitched on the last syllable, but her gaze locked onto Anya with startling intensity. “You left me.”

Anya froze, feeling as if the air had been punched from her lungs. “Marie…”.

But the girl pushed on, voice raw and rising with emotion. “You’re always leaving. I am always left behind”, her voice broke abruptly, as if overcome by her internal storm. Her small hands clenched weakly against the furs, frustration shaking her thin frame. “Why are you here now?”, she asked with far more venom than the child usually ever used.

The question was a knife twisted in Anya’s chest. She reached out towards the girl almost on instinct, just a trembling hand hovering over Marie’s arm, but the girl flinched away violently before Anya could touch her.

“Don’t!”, she snapped hoarsely, trying to push herself up on shaking arms, her whole body shaking from the effort.

Ontari moved forward in a blur, steadying the younger girl’s shoulders to keep from putting too much strain on the wounds. She had seen before that the sutures hadn’t even stopped bleeding yet. Marie lashed weakly at her too, shoving against Ontari’s hands with the little strength she had left. “Don’t touch me!”, she spat, the sound wet with tears that hadn’t fallen yet.

Risha whined softly, creeping closer with its massive head, but even then Matie shoved feebly at the wolf’s muzzle. “Stop it! Just go away!”, her voice cracked on the last words, but the fury in her grey eyes didn’t dim.

“Marie”, Lexa’s voice interrupted the girl, her tone a mixture of firmness and care. She leaned closer, her touch tightened on the girl’s shoulder. “Breathe, little star.”

The girl’s breathing was shallow and ragged, as if she was close to surrendering to a panic attack. The fight in her body was already fading under the weight of exhaustion. The anger within her grey eyes remained though, bright and wild. She turned that fury back on Anya. “Why?!”, she exclaimed, in a high-pitched whisper, “Why come back at all?”

Anya’s mouth opened, but she had no words for the girl, no words which would sooth her right now. Her throat worked uselessly. Every answer she’d ever used on a battlefield, or a political meeting was meaningless here. She’d faced warriors, commanders, whole armies, but never this. Never a child she had claimed as her own accusing her in such a way, where no strategy could be applied.

Lexa’s hand on Marie tightened slightly, trying to ground her. “Little star”, she murmured, tone softer than it had been before. “You don’t have to talk to her right now.”, she tried to sooth the upset girl. She didn’t want the girl to rupture a suture out of careless anger now, risking what little healing they had managed until now.

Marie shook her head weakly and tears finally slipped down her pale cheeks. “I don’t want her here.” The words, although whispered, fell louder than a gunshot into the room. The child’s grey eyes hardened even further. “I don’t want any of you here”, she proclaimed venomous.

The words sliced through the room like a bomb. Ontari’s dark eyes flashed, her jaw worked, but she didn’t speak. The way her hands trembled where she had pulled back from Marie was easily obvious though. Risha whined low in its throat, pressing its muzzle against her side as if trying to ground her, but Marie shoved weakly at its fur too. “Even you— go!” she hissed, though her strength faltered almost immediately.

Lexa inhaled forcefully, trying to keep her hands from gripping the girl’s shoulder too hard. She was trying hard to force her own urge to command and try to fix this down, she knew it would do nothing now. “We’re not leaving you,” she said softly, but firmly, “No matter what you say, we will stay.”

Marie didn’t respond. She turned her face away from all of them, curling slightly onto her side as if she was trying to disappear beneath the furs. Her shoulders shook faintly with each uneven breath. It was obvious the girl was crying but was stubbornly refusing comfort.

Anya sat frozen where she was. One of her hands were still half-extended and hovered uselessly in the air, fingers trembling visibly. Her eyes were wide and raw. The weight of every failure she hadn’t wanted to face was suddenly staring back at her through Marie’s open rejection. Slowly, as if realizing the futility of reaching further, she lowered her hand into her lap, curling it into a fist.

Lexa leaned closer to the bed, her green eyes never leaving Marie. “Rest now,” she murmured. “We’ll be here when you wake again.”

The girl didn’t answer, but her breathing slowly evened out, not from peace, but with exhausted surrender.

~ ~ ~

The silence which settled back into the room felt oppressive once again.

Risha slowly crawled closer to Marie until its muzzle finally rested on the child’s hip as a physical anchor. Either Marie was already asleep, or she didn’t have the strength to push at the wolf.

Anya’s fingers flexed at her side, switching between balling her hands into fists of frustration and trembling outstretched fingers.

The silence pressed on Anya’s chest like a weight. Her fingers flexed uselessly, as if searching for a weapon that wasn’t there. In one swift motion, she stood, she remained in front of the bed for a heartbeat, before her steps took her out on the balcony.

Ontari watched her leave without a word. She only looked with a frown at the commander. Lexa gave her a strained smile, before she followed her general onto the balcony, pulling the door firmly shut behind them.

Ontari sat back on the edge of the mattress. As the door to the balcony was shut, she wouldn’t be able to overhear what the women were going to speak about. Sitting beside the younger girl while she didn’t know if she was feigning sleep or indeed had slipped back into oblivion felt as if every second stretched into minutes unnaturally.

The nightblood girl looked through the room. She felt almost jealous of Risha’s instinctual insistence to stay close to Marie.

Without anything better to do, Ontari picked up the book she had read previously to Marie. She began to read again, haltingly, stumbling over the words.

“Chapter 3 – The Burrow”, Ontari wondered what could be so interesting about a mere burrow. She continued, “"Ron!” breathed Harry, creeping to the window and pushing it up so they could talk through the bars. “Ron, how did you — What the — ?”“

“Harry's mouth fell open as the full impact of what he was seeing hit him. Ron was leaning out of the back window of an old tur… turqu… turquoise car”, Ontari stumbled over the strange colour, frowning briefly. She had no idea what a “car” was supposed to be either, but she pushed on regardless.

Before she could continue though, she heard Marie giving a mixture of a snort and soft laugh. “You really haven’t gotten better at it” the younger girl said.

If anyone else had critiqued something about her like, daring to laugh as well, Ontari would have surely lashed out strongly. Now, Ontari was just grateful that Marie was speaking at all again. The younger girl had obviously only feigned to be asleep.

“You’re the only one I read to”, Ontari said gravely, trying to reason that she had next to no practise in this skill.

“Please, go on” Marie asked softly, turning slightly back to face Ontari. One of her hands hovered shakily over Risha’s muzzle, before the girl finally let her fingers trail gently over the silky fur.

Ontari briefly looked over to the balcony, judging if she should notify the commander and general.

“Please, just read” Marie added pleadingly.

“Ron was leaning out of the back window of an old turqu… turquoise car, which was parked in midair. Grinning at Harry from the front seats were Fred and George, Ron's elder twin brothers. “All right, Harry?” asked George….” Ontari continued to read.

Internally, the nightblood girl was pleased immensely, when Marie let out what sounded almost like a giggle at her attempt to give this George character another tone of voice. No matter how fleeting and soft the sound was, it was the first fragile sign that something which was unmistakably Marie still remained in the younger girl.

~ ~ ~

Anya didn’t need to turn to know that it was Lexa who had followed her. The commander’s measured footsteps gave her away.

The wind whipped at her face and hair as her trembling hands clutched the railing, as if gripping it tightly enough could hide the way her fingers still shook.

She didn’t know if Lexa had followed her to chastise her, or simply to talk. But either way, the thought made her stomach clench.

“I told you it would be harder than you wanted to believe” Lexa said almost nonchalantly. She came to stand beside Anya, turning her back on Polis as she leaned against the railing. Her gaze settled on her former mentor, sharp and probing.

Anya let out a shuddering breath. “When you said that she had been asking for me, I hoped…”, she broke off, pressing her lips into a thin line as her hands clenched the railing.

“There hadn’t been anger in her before. Clarke cautioned me to expect it though” Lexa retorted calmly, her expression mirroring the sorrow Anya felt openly.

“You’ve spoken to Clarke?” Anya questioned with a slightly raised brow. She knew there had remained distance between her former second and the blonde Skykru. She didn’t know if it would remain that way though. Right now, it would most likely be catastrophic to the coalition if their connection rekindled.

“Briefly” was the clipped reply Lexa offered, clearly not willing to say more on the matter.

Anya inclined her head slightly. “Did Skykru also have something to say about how to help her from this point on?”

“Just being there for her. There isn’t more we can do right now”, Lexa answered, tone coloured slightly with disdain that there was nothing more they could do to help their daughter.

“She isn’t going to make that easy, is she?” Anya swallowed forcefully, remembering how the child’s grey eyes had looked at her so uncharacteristically cold. There had been no warmth in the girl’s expression.

“Can you really fault her for that?” Lexa huffed, eyes narrowing. “Think about everything she’s endured, even before she fell into our lives. Is it any wonder her mind finally snapped?”

For a moment Anya opened her mouth, wanting to tell the younger woman that Marie would endure this as well, she simply had to. Remind the commander of everything all of them had survived, everything they had clawed through to keep breathing in this brutal world.

But the hard flash in Lexa’s green eyes stopped her cold. The words died on Anya’s tongue unspoken though. Instead, she indeed paused to think. Truly paused. Her mind reached back, past the commander’s sharpness, past her own defensive instincts. She thought of everything they knew about the girl. The loss of her parents, the long isolation, and everything which happened since the child was part of their lives.

The railing was biting against her skin uncomfortably due to the sheer force her grip had by now. Her brown eyes shimmered with unshed tears and her voice wavered when she finally asked, “How can I help her when she doesn’t accept me beside her any longer?”

The commander’s answer was brutal in its honesty. “You will be there”, Lexa said, her voice like tempered steel, “whether she wants you there or not. Don’t make the same mistake I did after the Mountain. If you leave her now, she will never trust you again.”

Anya’s jaw clenched. She wasn’t used to forcing her presence where it was unwelcome, wasn’t used to having to wait for forgiveness. Grovelling had never been part of her nature. And she doubted actual grovelling would do any good now.

Her throat worked around the realisation that Lexa was right. The only thing which might earn her a place at Marie’s side again wasn’t rank, or apology, but endurance. It would be painful. It would be exhausting. It would likely mean letting Lexa, and even Ontari, witness her at her most exposed and powerless.

But if this was what it, then she would do it. Lexa was right, if she walked out that door now, if she gave Marie another moment of abandonment, there would be no path back.

Lexa inclined her head slightly. Anya hadn’t spoken, but years of training side by side had them attuned to each other’s smallest gestures. The set of Anya’s jaw, the way her shoulders straightened against the cold, told Lexa everything she needed to know. The general was steeling herself for the long road ahead.  

“Ontari is going to stay within our quarters for now” Lexa broke the silence at last; her gaze fixed on Anya to catch even the faintest of reaction.

The phrasing didn’t escape Anya’s notice. Our quarters. A quiet exhale slipped from her chest, easing a fraction of the tightness still coiled there. She wondered briefly what had passed between the commander and the Ice Nation nightblood to bring about such a change. Enough obviously to let the girl remain here, enough to draw Titus’s fury over missed lessons.

It felt like another lifetime now, those nights when Marie had begged and pouted for the three of them to stay together in these rooms, refusing to sleep alone. Anya’s chest tightened painfully at the memory. She doubted the girl would accept their shared bed so easily again. But she couldn’t deny that, once, there had been no greater comfort to their daughter than curling between them, safe beneath their arms.

If needed, Anya would rather sleep on the floor than give up on their daughter. She had slept in far worse places when far less had been at stake.

“What happened with Ontari?” Anya questioned carefully. There was no accusation in her tone, only a cautious curiosity.  She had no plan yet for how to make amends with her second. She knew she would need to find a way, and soon. Ontari’s loyalty to Marie was plain to see, and Anya couldn’t afford to ignore that. 

“She faltered, but she returned and vowed to stay” Lexa answered calmly, measured.

For a heartbeat, something softened in Lexa’s expression, a flicker that told Anya just how much the commander valued the nightblood’s decision. It wasn’t easily earned, Lexa’s trust. The implication hung in the air between them. Ontari had done what Anya had not. She had stumbled, but she had chosen to stay.

Anya vowed to herself that she would stay as well. Whatever it took, however long it took, she would not walk away again. She inclined her head slightly, the only sign she was willing to give to Lexa that she understood the unspoken implication. Words weren’t needed between them; they had long ago learned to reach each other in silences and small gestures.

She would not falter again. 

~ ~ ~

When Lexa gently pushed open the door, Ontari’s voice carried toward them before either of the women could step inside.

“…It's all to do with be.. bewi…bewit…”, Ontari faltered noticeably over the unfamiliar word.

“It’s bewitching” Marie’s soft voice corrected her from the bed.

Lexa and Anya exchanged a silent, startled glance in the doorway. The tone of Marie’s voice was quiet but sure, more alert and peaceful than before. The way Ontari simply huffed and turned the page made it obvious this had been going on for a while already.

“It’s all to do with bewit… bewitching things that are Muggle-made, you know, in case they end up back in a Muggle shop or house. Like, last year, some old witch died and her tea set was sold to an antiques shop. This Muggle woman bought it, took it home, and tried to serve her friends tea in it. It was a nightmare — Dad was working overtime for weeks.” Ontari continued, stumbling over some words but pushing through determinedly.

A tentative smile tugged at Lexa’s lips. The nightblood’s voice was clumsy and uneven, but there was something profoundly ordinary about the scene. A girl reading aloud, another correcting softly, a wolf curled between them. For a heartbeat, the world outside ceased to exist.

 When Ontari paused to turn the page carefully, Lexa cleared her throat, stepping inside. Anya followed closely behind, both of them momentarily reluctant to break the fragile calm they’d walked in on.